<?xml version="1.0" encoding="UTF-8"?>
<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.1//EN" 
   "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml11/DTD/xhtml11.dtd">
<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml">
<head>
<meta http-equiv="content-type" content="text/html; charset=windows-1252" />
<link rel="stylesheet" 
type="text/css"  href="mirror.css"  title="style" />


<title>Martyrs Mirror Online: Hearts On Fire!</title>
<meta http-equiv="pics-label" content='(pics-1.1 "http://www.icra.org/ratingsv02.html" l gen true for "http://homecomers.org/mirror/" r (cz 1 lz 1 nz 1 oz 1 vz 1) "http://www.rsac.org/ratingsv01.html" l gen true for "http://homecomers.org/mirror/" r (n 0 s 0 v 0 l 0))' />
</head>
<body>
<h1>MARTYR'S MIRROR</h1>
<div id="4"> 

<h2>Publisher's Preface to Third English Edition,
1886</h2> 

<p>As the English language, year by year, becomes more prevalent
among our Mennonite people, the necessity of presenting to them
in that language the doctrines, teachings and practices, as
well as the story of the sufferings, the faithful endurance and
the final triumphant deaths, of those of like faith with us who
lived in the earlier ages of Christianity, becomes apparent to
every reflecting mind.</p>

<p>These doctrines, teachings and practices together with the
examples of faithful devotion to Christ and His Word, and the
unfaltering endurance under the severest persecution, are
powerful incentives to Christians today, to inspire many
sincere souls to live a more consecrated life, to practice
greater self-denial, to live more separated from the world, and
show a greater zeal in the work of the Lord and-the salvation
of souls; and they are especially precious to us, as
Mennonites, because through these people it pleased God to hand
down to us the living exemplification of the peculiar tenets
and doctrines which we hold and practice at the present
day.</p>

<p>The reading of books of this kind will also help us to
appreciate more highly the privileges with which God has
blessed us above our forefathers. While they oftentimes were
not permitted to have permanent places of abode, and were
driven about and hunted down like wild beasts, compelled to
dwell in caves and mountains, and other secluded places, hold
their meetings in secret, and suffer every imaginable form of
injustice and persecution, because to be a true follower of
Christ in those days was considered the very worst of crimes,
we enjoy all the privileges of citizenship and are protected in
the fullest enjoyment of our religion and forms of worship.</p>

<p>It is the duty of the church to maintain and teach the pure
Gospel of Jesus Christ and to transmit the same to coming
generations, and as we contemplate these facts, what a glorious
treasure of pure Christian devotion shines in these pages of
the Story of the Martyrs, and how much this grand record of
their sufferings has done, and may yet do to perpetuate the
pure doctrines of the Gospel, eternity alone will reveal.</p>

<p>For these reasons and many others that might be referred to,
the publishers of this edition, have, in the fear of God, for
the promotion of His glory, undertaken the publication of"The
Bloody Theater or Martyrs' Mirror" and herewith give it to the
public, in the hope that it may be the means of promoting the
glory of God and of doing much good among the children of
men.</p>

<p>NOTE.-The translation of this work was made from the Dutch
Edition of 1660, and where questions of doubt occurred, the
edition of 1685 as well as the German editions were
consulted.</p>

<p><i>THE PUBLISHER.</i></p>

<h2><i>Publisher's Preface to the English Printing of
1950</i></h2> 

<p>It was in the year 1742 that the Mennonites of eastern
Pennsylvania wrote to their brethren in the Netherlands
reporting their numerical growth in the New World and their
fear of war being imminent. Three years later they wrote again,
repeating the contents of their first letter and making a
special appeal for assistance in the publication of a German
edition of van Braght's <i>Bloody Theater or Martyrs'
Mirror.</i> The six Skippack ministers who signed the letter
stated that they wrote at the instance of the other
congregations. They were concerned to prepare their people for
the cross of testing and suffering which war would bring with
it. They said simply that"it becomes us to strengthen ourselves
for such circumstances with patience and endurance, and to make
every preparation for steadfast constancy in our faith." They
had a special concern for the generation of young men in their
congregations who were not able to read the Dutch <i>Martyrs'
Mirror.</i> The story of the eventual publication of a German
<i>Martyrs' Mirror</i> at Ephrata in Lancaster County,
Pennsylvania, in 1748-49 is too well known to require rehearsal
here.</p>

<p>Two centuries after the publication of the first American
edition of this sixteenth century Dutch Mennonite classic, we
again find the Mennonite brotherhood laboring to strengthen its
young people in the nonresistant faith of the fathers by the
publication of another English edition of the <i>Martyrs'
Mirror</i> of T. J. van Braght, 1625-64. Indeed the loyalty of
the Mennonite brotherhood to its historic peace principles has
been tested in the first and second world wars more severely
than at any time since the sixteenth century. The pressures of
the contemporary culture upon the group to surrender this
historic principle are strong. It is evident that vigorous
efforts must be made to capture the loyalty of our youth if the
Biblical doctrine of nonresistance is to be preserved. May God
add His blessing to this effort to glorify His name.</p>

<p>September 20, 1949</p>


<p><i>-J. C. WENGER, Secretary of the</i></p>

<p><i>Historical Committee of the Mennonite</i></p>

<p><i>General Conference</i></p>

<p>The first English edition of <i>Martyrs Mirror,</i>
translated from the German, was published in 1837 at Lampeter
Square, Lancaster County, Pa., and reprinted in 1853 at London,
England. The second English edition, translated from the
original Dutch edition of 1660, was published in 1886 at
Elkhart, Ind., and reprinted in 1938 and later years at
Scottdale, Pa. Beginning in 1977, reprints include improved
reproductions of engravings, from <i>The Drama of the
Martyrs,</i> by permission of Mennonite Historical Associates,
Lancaster, Pa. Second English edition, twenty-first printing,
1999 Printed in the United States of America. 49,500 copies in
print from 1938. International Standard Book Numbers:
0-8361-1390-X (hard cover). 0-8361-9087-4 (Kivar cover)</p>

</div><div id="5"> 


<h2>TRANSLATOR'S PREFACE</h2> 

<p>The principal object in writing this preface is to point out
the chief difficulties I had to contend with while engaged in
this truly laborious and exhaustive task. I do this not for the
purpose of exciting sympathy on my behalf, but to convey to the
reader an appropriate idea of the perplexing nature of the work
that has engrossed my closest attention, and absorbed so much
of my energy and care for nearly three years. The reader will
thereby be prepared to view with greater leniency the
unavoidable inconsistencies and other imperfections his
critical eye may discover.</p>

<p>First of all, I will state, that the original is written in
a language that has now been obsolete for many years; which
proved a very great obstacle, since no dictionary obtainable
could at all times give the desired information; hence the
meaning of many words and phrases had to be ascertained by long
and laborious research and comparison, which necessarily did
not always preclude the possibility of an error, though I have
taken great pains to give as correct a rendition as
possible.</p>

<p>Another feature of the original that frequently proved very
trying is, that it consists in great part of letters written by
comparatively illiterate persons, in consequence of which the
language used is very often ambiguous or obscure, necessitating
an incalculable amount of weighing and comparing, without
affording certainty of having apprehended the writer's true
meaning.</p>

<p>Still another perplexing obstacle was the fact, that, many
proper names occurring in the work, and foreign to the language
of the original, having apparently been incorrectly
transcribed, it was not always possible to determine the exact
spelling of such names; which, though desirable, is, however,
not of any material consequence.</p>

<p>But the greatest and most harassing difficulty of all was
the circumstance that the version of the Bible used by the
various authors of the work differed in many, and, sometimes,
in very essential points from our English translation, making
it 3n utter impossibility, to adopt an inflexible rule, without
involving one's self in countless errors and misconstructions.
The course I generally pursued was, that when the rendering of
the passage, or passages, given or used in the original, almost
coincided with, or at least did not materially differ from that
of our English Bible, I would take the quotation in question
verbatim from the latter; while, when the discrepancy was too
considerable, or an argument depended on the exact rendition, I
translated the phrase or passage to be quoted literally from
the original. Hence the reader will perceive, that this made an
absolute impossibility to adhere to one, invariable rule; and
if he but knew the amount of careful thought, and anxiety,
expended in drawing the line, when to quote from the English
version, and when to translate literally, he could not- but
heartily sympathize with the translator, and kindly overlook
any shortcomings he may discover.</p>

<p>With regard to the marginal notes or remarks, I would state
that I have invariably translated them when they contained
anything necessary for the complete understanding of the
subject under consideration; but frequently they are simply a
resume of a paragraph, or side remark of the compiler, without
any information or value for the reader; in this case I have
omitted them.</p>

<p>These are the chief points I would have the reader consider,
for by bearing them in mind he will be enabled to judge
understandingly, and also, charitably, of the manner in which
the translator has performed his task. To claim that this
translation contains no errors would be simply preposterous,
when all circumstances are taken into consideration; but I can
truthfully say that I have conscientiously striven to furnish
the reader with as correct a translation as it was in my power
to give. How I have succeeded I leave to the reader to judge.
Trusting that the contemplation of the faith, the
self-sacrificing zeal, and the religious fervor of these
martyrs of former ages will leave its imprint for good upon the
hearts of those who shall read this book, I now consign it to
the hands of the printer.</p>

<p><i>JOSEPH F. SOHM.</i></p>

</div><div id="6"> 

<h2>AUTHOR'S INVOCATION</h2> 

<p class="c8">To God, my Lord, the Creator, Preserver and
Redeemer of my soul, be praise, honor and majesty, forever and
ever.</p>

<p>Pardon me, O my Lord and my God! that I, who am but dust and
ashes, approach Thee. Gen. 18:27. I fear to come to Thee,
because Thou art a consuming fire, while I am wood, hay and
stubble, subject to be burned; yet I must not remain away from
Thee, because I have that which is Thine, yea, which is Thy
most precious treasure, even the blood and offering of the
saints; I must needs come and offer it to Thee.</p>

<p>May it be well-pleasing to Thee, my dear Savior, that I
offer that which long since has been offered up to Thee. But I
have full confidence that Thou wilt not reject me. I believe I
have the assurance that this will be acceptable to Thee, for
Thy servant David, a man after Thine own heart, sang,"Precious
in the sight of the Lord is the death of his saints." Ps.
116:15.*</p>

<p>Moreover Thou knowest, O my Saviour and Redeemer, the
steadfast faith, the unquenchable love, and faithfulness unto
death, of those of whom I have written, and who gave their
precious lives and bodies as a sacrifice to Thee.</p>

<p>Besides, Thou hast. spared my life, that I unworthy and weak
as I am for such a task, might yet perform it; for snares of
death had compassed me, keeping me bound nearly six months
during last fall, winter and spring, so that I often thought I
could not survive; nevertheless Thy power strengthened rife,
Thy hand rescued me and by Thy grace was I led safely through,
so that in the midst of my difficulties and contrary to the
advice and opinion of the physicians (for -the zeal and love of
Thy saints had taken complete possession of me), I wrote and
finished the greater part of this work.</p>

<p>The sacrifices which are acceptable unto Thee are a broken
spirit, etc. Ps. 51:17. But this offering, O God, was
accompanied with many tears, caused partly by my distress, as
1, on account of the weakness of my nature, called upon Thee
for help, partly through joy, as I found and experienced Thy
comfort and help.</p>

<p>Yet that which more than all else caused my tears to flow
was the remembrance of the sufferings and the death of Thy
martyrs, who altogether innocent, as defenceless lambs, were
led to the water, the fire, the sword, or to the wild
beasts</p>

<br /><cite>* Not only oxen and sheep, but also turtle doves
and young doves were formerly acceptable offerings to Thee. O
my God, and how much more the blood and death of Thy Saints. in
the arena, there to suffer and to die for Thy name's sake.
However, I experienced no small degree of joy as I contemplated
the living confidence they had in Thy grace, and how valiantly
they fought their way through the strait gate.</cite> 

<p>Ah! how often did I wish to have been a partaker with them;
my soul went with them, so to speak, into prison;* I encouraged
them in the tribunal, to bear patiently, without gainsaying or
flinching, their sentence of death. It seemed to me as though I
accompanied them to the place of execution, scaffold or stake,
saying to them in their extremity, Fight valiantly dear
brethren and sisters; the crown of life awaits you. I almost
fancied that I had died with them; so inseparably was my love
bound up with them; for Thy holy name's sake.</p>

<p>I therefore entreat Thee once more, O my God, to let this
sacrifice be well-pleasing in Thy sight, and to accept it from
me, Thy most humble servant, as a token of love towards Thee as
well as toward Thy blessed martyrs.</p>

<p>But before I leave this, strengthen me with Thy good Spirit,
and arm me with the consolation of Thy grace, that I may not
only confess Thee here with my mouth, but also honor Thee by a
virtuous and pious conversation (Ps. 119:5), in the most holy
faith, not refusing, if necessity require it and Thy honor be
promoted thereby, to give my life and body into suffering and
death, so that I may become like unto Thy dearest friends, my
slain fellow brethren and sisters, and receive with them the
same reward in the great day of Thy recompense. Song of Sol.
1:4.</p>

<p>This is the desire and petition of him, whose name is known
to Thee, and who entreats Thee for grace now and in the hour of
his death, and in the ages of eternity. O Lord, so let it be I
For Thine, O God, is the kingdom, and the power, and the glory,
forever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p><i>T. J. VAN BRAGHT.</i></p>

<p>Dort, July the 23rd, 1659.</p>

<h2>____________________</h2> 

<p>NOTE.--The ADVERTISEMENT by the Dutch Publishers is omitted,
as we deem it irrelevant to the present Edition. It contains a
few plain statements of some amendments introduced in regard to
obsolete words and phrases; that many noteworthy additions
compiled from authentic records have been made,
etc.-Translator.</p>

<br /><cite>*"What is said of Onesiphorus according to the
body, we have experienced in the spirit. Paul says, "The Lord
give mercy unto the house of Onesiphorus; for he oft refreshed
me, and was not ashamed of my chain." 11 Tim. 1:16.</cite> 

 

</div><div id="7"> 


<h2>AUTHOR'S PREFACE</h2> 

<h2>TO MY BELOVED FRIENDS AND COMPANIONS IN CHRIST JESUS OUR SAVIOUR</h2> 

<p class="c8">Next to God we are joined to our fellow-believers
who have received the same faith with us; and we shall
therefore address ourselves to them.</p>

<p>But most beloved, do not expect that we shall bring you into
Grecian theatres, to gaze on merry comedies or gay
performances. Here shall not be opened unto you the pleasant
arbors and pleasure gardens of Atlas, Adonis or Semiramis,
which are said to have been built in the air, and of which the
ancients used to sing their merry lays; yet far be it from us
to conduct you to places of sadness, surely not to such as can,
in verity, be called places of sadness.</p>

<p>True enough, we shall lead you into dark valleys, even into
the valleys of death (Ps. 23:4), where nothing will be seen but
dry bones, skulls, and frightful skeletons of those who have
been slain; these beheaded, those drowned, others strangled at
the stake, some burnt, others broken on the wheel, many torn by
wild beasts, half devoured, and put to death in manifold cruel
ways; besides, a great multitude who having escaped death bear
the marks of Jesus, their Saviour, on their bodies, wandering
about over mountains and valleys, through forests and
wilderness, forsaken of friends and kindred, robbed and
stripped of all their temporal possessions, and living in
extreme poverty.</p>

<p>Yet to look upon all this will not cause real sadness, for
though the aspect is dismal according to the body, the soul
will nevertheless rejoice in it, seeing that not one of all
those who were slain preferred life to death, since life often
was proffered them on condition that they depart from the
constancy of their faith. But this they did not desire; on the
contrary, many of them went boldly onward to meet death; some
even hastened to outstrip others, that they might be the first,
who did not shrink from suffering anything the tyrants could
devise, nay more than could be thought possible for a mortal
man to endure.</p>

<p>Among a great number we perceived a godfearing hero and
knight of Christ,* who, advancing</p>

<br /><cite>* This hero and knight of Christ we may
understand to be one of Christ's apostles, but it may also very
properly be inferred that reference is had to"Gerardus," who
went singing before his"On': to suffer for Christ's name. See
first book about Arnold , Marsilius, Tbeodoric and five other
men and two women, who were burnt alive with him at Cologne.
before others, went cheerfully unto suffering and death, in
which he acquitted himself so well that he fought or pressed
his way with such force through the strait gate, that he left
his flesh on the posts.</cite> 

<p>When we had beheld this with the eyes of faith, and had
meditated upon the matter, our spirit was kindled, and we
almost seemed to welcome him, and to wish him everything good,
in these words</p>

<p class="c3">Klimt op uw' gulden Hoogtt', Voor-vechter van de
bende</p>

<p class="c3">Der heyl'ge Zielen, die God's roode Bloed-banier
Navolgde, in't gedrang, in't midden der ellenden, Daer niet dan
rook en damp van menschen offervyer</p>

<p class="c3">Tot door de wolken vloog; noch gingt_gy Held haer
voor,</p>

<p class="c3">Ja streed, door d' enge poort, ten ruymen Hemel
door.</p>

<p>[Climb up your golden height, champion of the band of holy
souls, who followed God's red banner of blood, in oppression
and in the midst of misery; where naught but the smoke and
vapor of human burnt sacrifices ascended to the clouds; yet
thou, hero, didst go before them, yea, didst fight thy way
through the strait gate to the wide Heaven.]</p>

<p>Then followed a great multitude of very pious and virtuous
people-men, women, youths and maidens, all clothed with the
same armor of faith and walking in the same path. Some of these
were, like their leader, deprived of life; the rest were led to
different places of execution, where they beheld many of their
fellow brethren and sisters whose lives had been taken by the
most dreadful means burned and roasted at the stake. They
nevertheless were not terrified, though they had to expect to
be put to death in the same manner; but were of good cheer,
calling upon God for help, that they might not falter in their
sufferings, but prove steadfast to the end; this clone, they
also were burned.</p>

<p>This seemed almost to break our heart; our soul was
horrified, and filled with pity on account of their misery; but
when we remembered their constancy, and that now, for the heat
endured, they found refreshing with God, nay, could expect the
blessed crown of immortal glory, our grief subsided and sweet
consolation filled our soul, so that we, to their memory, wrote
the following words for ourselves and our fellow brethren:</p>

</div><div id="8"> 

<p class="c8">Het schriklyk offer-vyer, de glinsterende staken,
Den smaed, die Zion leed, kon God's verkoren volk Belet noch
hinder doen, noch geensins angstig makers</p>

<p class="c8">Te dragen Christi naem, als in sen vritte wolk:
Tot dat een heete vlam haer lyven heeft versloizden; Waer door
haer zielen toen by God verkoeling vonden.</p>

<p>[The dreadful sacrificial fire, the shining stakes, the
shame which Zion suffers, could neither disturb nor hinder
God's chosen people, nor make them afraid to bear the name of
Christ, as in a white cloud: Until a burning flame has consumed
their bodies; whereby their souls found refreshing with
God.]</p>

<p>Some were not only bold, but went forth unto death
rejoicing, which was evident from their conduct. Others showed
this by their words, as they spoke of the consolation in their
heart and the glad hope dwelling in their soul, when they were
placed at the stake. Many, when the fire was kindled, and even
when they were enveloped by the flames, sang with a loud voice
to the honor of their God and Saviour, because they had been
counted worthy to be offered up as sacrifices for His holy
name's sake. Acts 5:41.</p>

<p>Were we to relate the joy and consolation of those, who,
having escaped death, wandered about in foreign countries and
solitary places, without friends or kindred, help or
assistance, time would fail us and the words be inadequate to
sufficiently describe it. Here the testimony of Paul is found
true,".that all things work together for good to them that love
God." Rom. 8:28. For those who were forsaken by friends and
human assistance, found help with the angels of God, and
protection under the wings of the Almighty. Those who had no
eternal rest or dwelling-place found rest and a mansion of
content in their souls and hearts. Those who went almost naked,
having no clothes to put on, were most preciously clothed and
adorned according to the soul, with the robe of righteous-,
ness and the garment of salvation and godly virtues. Those who
had to abandon their secular business, and submit to
despoilment of their money, goods and everything they had, so
.that outwardly they were very poor, possessed great riches
within themselves through the grace of God which they received
through the consolation of the Holy Spirit, and the word of the
Lord, which was more precious to them than many thousand pieces
of gold and silver.</p>

<p>The inconvenient seasons of the year, the heat of summer,
the cold of winter, the wetness of spring and fall, together
with the contingencies of thunder, lightning, hail, snow, rain,
wind, hunger, thirst, sickness, fatigue, and other innumerable
troubles with which they met while wandering about and
suffering persecutions, were to them sweet pleasures and
recreations in the Lord, for They knew that this would
afterwards be turned into joy to them, since it is
written, "Blessed are ye that weep now: for ye shall laugh."
Luke 6:21. Again, "That we must through much tribulation enter
into the kingdom of God." Acts 14:22. And, in another place, "If
we suffer, we shall also reign with him." II Tim. 2:12.</p>

<p>This caused them to say with the apostle, "For our light
affliction, which is but for a moment, worketh for us a far
more exceeding and eternal weight of glory." II Cor. 4:17."For
I reckon that the sufferings of this present time are not
worthy to be compared with the glory which shall be revealed in
us." Rom. 8:18."For whether we live, we live unto the Lord; and
whether we die, we die unto the Lord: whether we live therefore
or die, we are the Lord's." Rom. 14:8, etc.</p>

<p>Many of them would not have exchanged the. darkest and
severest dungeons, or the caves of the earth, in which they had
to hide themselves, for royal palaces. The wilderness was to
them a delightful pleasure-garden, the howling of the wild
beasts which surrounded them, as sweet music or the songs of
birds; and water and roots or dry bread delighted them more
than the daintiest viands and drink from the tables of the
great.</p>

<p>All this was granted them by the munificent hand of God, on
account of the constancy of their faith, from which they could
by no means be made to swerve, nor brought to waver in it; on
account of their living hope, which begat in their souls a
longing for the future riches, so that they were enabled to
esteem the present ones as of little worth and forget them; and
on account of their unquenchable love for God, His holy truth,
and their beloved fellow-believers, whereby their souls were
kindled into a flame far more intense than were their bodies
through physical fire though these were reduced to ashes.</p>

<p>But can carnal men comprehend this? Will any of them believe
these things? We think not; for how can a carnal man partake of
the Spirit of God? How could one who is earthly-minded ascend
to heaven in his thoughts? I Cor. 2:14. How can one comprehend
that which pertains to salvation, who himself is altogether
unsaved and possesses no desire to obtain salvation through the
grace of God? What fire of divine love can he feel, whose heart
is totally cold, and who loves nothing but sin and sinful
creatures.</p>

<p>We maintain, therefore, that these are things which belong
not to the blind worldly-minded, since they in their ignorance
would not esteem them; but to the heavenly-minded, who, as
spiritual eagles, contemplate with the eyes of the soul the
mysteries of God; who seek their food with God, and find their
delight in His saints and wellbeloved who sacrificed their
lives for His holy truth.</p>

<p>For this cause we have addressed ourselves to you, most
beloved brethren and sisters, who, with</p>

</div><div id="9"> 

<p>us, and with our slain friends, the blessed martyrs of God,
have received the same faith: This book, the humble work of our
hands, but which is nevertheless a precious jewel, in view of
the persons and matters contained therein, we have dedicated to
you. Receive it, then, with the same love with which it has
been dedicated to you. Read it again and again, and with the
same attention and emotion with which -we have written and
re-written it. We are fully confident that, if you do this, it
will not be unfruitful to you. But, before all things, fix your
eyes upon the martyrs themselves, note the steadfastness of
their faith, and follow their example.</p>

<p>Ruth, the Moabitess, said to Naomi, the mother of her
husband, "Entreat me not to leave thee, or to return from
following after thee: for whither thou goest, I will go; and
where thou lodgest, I will lodge; thy people shall be my
people, and thy God my God: where thou diest, will I die, and
there will I be buried: the Lord do so to me, and more also, if
aught but death part thee and me." Ruth 1:16, 17.</p>

<p>With such inseparable love ought we, most beloved in the
Lord, to be joined to our blessed fellow brethren who have
been slain for the testimony of the Lord, that we might follow
their footsteps unto the end; for surely, the God whom they
confessed and served, is also our God; the Saviour on whom they
placed their hope is our Saviour; the faith which they all
confessed is our faith (we speak of Anabaptists in general);
the law and commandments of God which they received as their
rule of life are also our laws and commandments; they bowed
their knees before God; they obligated themselves by the words
of their lips to render obedience to God, and thereupon
received holy baptism; we have done the same; they promised to
continue steadfastly all the days of their life in the faith
and due obedience, without departing therefrom, yea, if
necessary, to suffer death for it; we have promised the same.
What difference, then, is there between us and them? Certainly
only this: that they all persevered unto the end nay, unto a
cruel death, without departing to the right or to the left;
which we have not yet done. They have taken by force the
blessed Fatherland, the Canaan rich with milk, the true
promised land which flows with honey; which we have not yet
done. They have therefore entered into rest, yea, have come to
the Lord; while we are yet in unrest, proceeding in our
pilgrimage in the absence of the Lord.</p>

<p>Therefore, my most beloved friends in Christ Jesus, let us
also in this last respect seek to be conformed to our beloved
slain fellow brethren, that we may continue steadfastly unto
the end in the most holy faith which we have confessed with
them. Oh! be careful in this matter; watch over your
dear-bought souls; for it is highly necessary, yea, more
necessary than at any former time.</p>

<h2>OF THE GREATER DANGER THERE IS AT THIS TIME, THAN IN THE BLOODY AND DISTRESSING TIMES OF THE MARTYRS*</h2> 

<p>These are sad times, in which we live; nay, truly, there is
more danger now than in the time of our fathers, who suffered
death for the testimony of the Lord. Few will believe this,
because the great majority look to that which is external and
corporeal, and in this respect it is now better, quieter and
more comfortable; few only look to that which is internal and
pertains to the soul, and on which everything depends,"for what
is a man profited, if he shall gain the whole world, and lose
his own soul? or what shall a man give in exchange for his
soul?" Matt. 16:26.</p>

<p>These times are certainly more dangerous; for then Satan
came openly, through his servants, even at noon-day, as a
roaring lion, so that he could be known, and it now and then
was possible to hide from him; besides, his chief design then
was to destroy the body: but now he comes as in the night, or
in the twilight, in a strange but yet pleasing form, and, in a
two-fold way, lies in wait to destroy the soul; partly, to
trample under foot, and annihilate entirely, if this were
possible, the only saving Christian faith-- partly to destroy
the true separated Christian life which is the outgrowth of
faith. Ps. 9l:5, 6.</p>

<p>He reveals himself on the one hand as an angel of light, II
Cor. 11:14, 15, as a kind, pleasant, yea, even divine
messenger, with humble countenance, downcast eyes, plain garb,
and living in seclusion from the throng of the worldly-minded,
even as the holiest people, yea, the martyrs of God, formerly
did. His words are modest, trembling and full of
contrition-seemingly coming from deep meditation, inward fear
and apprehension, lest he might speak amiss or untruthfully.
Meanwhile, and before one is aware of it, he seizes hold and
tears like a wolf in sheep's clothing, robbing the innocent
lambs of Christ of their precious faith, which, he pretends to
be of small importance, but without which faith it is
impossible to please God, Heb. 11:6, nay, without which we,
according to the words of Christ shall be condemned, Mark 16:
16; for (says Paul), whatsoever is not of faith is sin, Rom.
14:23.</p>

<p>It grieves us to the heart that we must live to see these
times, and therefore speak in this wise. O Lord, strengthen our
faith! help Thy weak, trusting lambs, that they may not be led
into error, nor moved from the foundations of the most holy
faith.</p>

<p>On the other hand, through his instigation, the world now
reveals itself very beautiful and glori-</p>

<br /><cite>* When Israel under Pharaoh, in Egypt, had to
burn brick, and to perform other hard labor, for the king, they
remembered God, yea, cried unto the Almighty, so that God was
moved to compassion Ex. chap. 1, 2, 3, etc.; but when God had
delivered them, anti brought them into a goodly land where it
went well with them according to the body, they forsook the
Lord, and became wanton. Dent. 32:15. This difference is found
to exist also between the times of oppression and the times of
freedom.</cite> 

</div><div id="10"> 

<p>ous, more than at any preceding time, in a threefold
pleasing form-the lust of the flesh, the lust of the eye, and
the pride of life.* Almost all men run after her, to worship
her as a queen supreme; but all are deceived thereby; yea, many
who have drunk of the poisoned wine of her lusts from the
golden cup of her iniquities and deceptions, die a spiritual
death.</p>

<p>As the first design is aimed at the faith, so this is
directed against the true Christian life. Here lies great
danger. Who shall escape these snares? He that would at no time
be taken unawares by it, must indeed be cautious and watchful.
But our very flesh seems prone to it. Here must be fasting,
watching, praying, and calling upon God for help, otherwise
there is no escape.</p>

<p>Many of the ancients who supposed that they had been
circumspect and observed their duty, were deceived hereby-;
some were lulled into a careless sleep, so that they paid no
heed to themselves or to their vocation; others were brought to
despair of the divine truth; others were drawn away totally
from God; some died a spiritual death; others died both
spiritually and bodily; and some have plunged themselves
helter-skelter into the abyss of the disfavor of God, to be
punished by Him soul and body and forever.</p>

<p>These things which we tell you are no riddles or blind
speeches, for we speak the truth, or the Word of God must be
false; but as the Word of God cannot lie, what we have said is
certain and infallible since God in His Word bears witness of
it, yea, declares it emphatically and abundantly. Other
histories which make mention of this, we pass by in silence and
dismiss them altogether, because we do not hold them in equal
estimation with the holy Scriptures. It was the world and its
lusts that of old caused all the great calamities of which we
have spoken; and not only this, but it has also caused
thousands who live in various cities, countries, kingdoms,
empires, yea, on the face of the whole earth, to mourn, weep
and wail, on account of their natural misery as well as on
account of their experiencing the wrath of God in their souls
because of the magnitude and enormity of the sins perpetrated
by them.</p>

<p>It certainly was through worldly lusts that the old world
perished; that Sodom, Gomorrah, Zeboim, and Admah were
consumed, overthrown and totally destroyed by fire from Heaven;
that in forty years, through serpents, fire, and other plagues,
the wanton and lustful people of Israel perished to the number
of over six hundred thousand in the wilderness; and that the
mighty mari</p>

<br /><cite>*" John, the friend of Christ, has presented the
deceptive, beautiful appearance of this world in its threefold
view of the lust of the flesh, the lust of the eyes, and the
pride of life. I John 2:16. Solomon portrayed the same as a
harlot or wanton woman, who allures young men unto her; who is
loud and stubborn, and whose feet abide not in her house; but
whither those who follow her are led, as an ox to the
slaughter, to certain destruction, nay, to death and hell.
Prov. 7.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* The following and other misfortunes which were
caused by worldly and carnal lusts cannot be numbered. O, that
Solomon, the wisest among the children of men, might have
known, conquered, and taken care of himself in this respect.
ime cities, Zidon and Tyrus, whose ships were trimmed with
embroidered, silken sails from Egypt; whose rowers sat upon
benches of ivory; where incalculable riches were bought and
sold and, from carnal incentives, almost inconceivable arts
practiced were reduced to a heap of stones and so leveled to
the ground, that the fishermen stretch out their nets to dry on
the rocks upon which these cities stood. Gen. 7; Matt. 24:37,
38; Luke 17:26, 27; II Peter 2:5.-Gen. 19:24, 25; Isa. 13:19;
Jer. 50:40; Hos. 11:8; Amos 4:11; Luke 17:28, 29; I I Pet. 2:6;
Jude 7.-Compare Num. 1:2, 3, 46 with Num. 14:22, 23. Also Num.
11:1 and 16:31-35; 21:6; Jude 5.-Isa. 23:4, 5; Ezek. 27:26-28;
28, the whole chapter.</cite> 

<p>I will not now speak of Jerusalem, Chorazin, Bethsaida;
Capernaum, and other mighty licentious and luxurious cities,
which, with all their inhabitants who had in this respect
sinned against God, have borne His-wrath, and felt, to their
destruction, the plagues of His afflicting hand; for this would
consume too much time.* O awful judgments of God! O pernicious
worldly-mindedness 1 O corroding and cankering luxury, that
draggest after thee such a train of unspeakable miseries! Help,
Lord, that our soul be delivered from all these dangers.</p>

<p>But what danger would there be, if none but the open enemies
of God and His holy truth were guilty in this matter? What harm
could be done, if they alone, and no others, would arouse and
call down upon themselves the wrath of God? For then every
pious and serious soul would beware of their example as of a
savage beast, venomous serpent, or deadly basilisk. But now
such is the state of things that many commoners and such as are
not total strangers to religion or the worship of God; who, as
they say, would fain be saved; and who, therefore, though they
are not truly enlightened, glorify and praise God and His Word
with their mouth, show nevertheless (to the seduction of the
simple) that the world is their dear friend, yea lies nearest
to their heart, since most of their works are directed to its
service, that they may thereby partake of its glittering but
deceptive reward.</p>

<p>Hence arises that shameful and vast commerce which extends
far beyond the sea into other parts of the world, Ezek. 27, but
which notwithstanding cannot satisfy those who love it, but,
on. the contrary, brings great danger, that that which has
already been gotten, may be lost, others defrauded, and they
themselves, both in soul and body, stripped and robbed of their
possessions.</p>

<p>Numerous large, expensive and ornamented houses,
countryseats of splendid architecture and provided with towers,
parks magnificent as a paradise, and other embellished
pleasure-grounds, which are seen on every hand indicate this in
no small degree. Dan. 4:29, 30.</p>

<p>* <i>See Josephus on the Jewish wars; also Egesippus,
Eusebius, and Pamphilius.</i></p>

</div><div id="11"> 

<p>The wearing of clothes from foreign countries, whether of
foreign materials, uncommon colors or of strange fashions as
obtain in the course of time according to the custom of the
openly worldly-minded (which are as changeable as the moon),
and which custom is followed by many humble and seemingly plain
people, confirms greatly what we have before said. Gen. 35:2;
Zeph. 1:8; Isa. 3:16-24.</p>

<p>The giving and attending great dinners, lavish banquets and
wedding-feasts (though one may never be found in taverns or
tippling-houses), where everything is in profusion, and where
the beneficent gifts of the Lord which should not be used
otherwise than with great thankfulness, and of which a portion
naturally belongs to the poor, are squandered and consumed
without the least necessity, even by those who are considered
sober and temperate, is an incontrovertible evidence of a
sensual and wanton heart; and proves also that those who have
much to do with these things, cannot be exculpated from living
after the flesh; for which carnal life certainly has no promise
of salvation, but on the contrary, many severe threatenings of
the wrath and displeasure of God, nay, of eternal damnation,
are recorded in the blessed leaves of the Word of God, which
contains nothing but the truth. Esth. 1:3-8; Dan. 5:1-3; Luke
12:19, 20; 16:19.</p>

<p>O how different is this from the life of a true Christian,
who has forsaken himself and his lusts. How great the step that
is between their walk and that of the holy martyrs, who
delivered up, not only their carnal desires, but also their
bodies and lives, unto death for the Lord's sake! But how great
a difference will also be between the two classes afterwards I
When the former, having had their good things in this life,
shall be shut out from the true, heavenly riches, but the
latter, because they have love to God, renounced and abandoned
their possessions, which might have led them into sin, be
admitted to the true enjoyment of the heavenly riches and
pleasures, and that for ever and ever I Mal. 3:18.</p>

<p>Here shall obtain what is recorded concerning the end of the
luxurious rich man and that of poor Lazarus: that the rich man,
when he saw Lazarus in Abraham's bosom, while lie himself was
in hell, received this answer to his doleful lamentations, "Son,
remember, that thou in thy lifetime receivedst thy good things,
and likewise Lazarus evil things: but now he is comforted, and
thou art tormented." Luke 16:25. Appropriate is here also Wis.
5:1, 2.</p>

<p>Nevertheless, these and similar evil examples are constantly
presented to our eyes, and they are the more pernicious and
dangerous for the reason that some worldly-minded people
pronounce them to be non-essential, unimportant for either good
or evil, and therefore, allowable; while it is the same with
them as with the fruit from the tree of knowledge, which stood
in the midst of Paradise, and was pleasant to the eyes, but
deadly in the use, for whoever ate of it, had to die, Gen.
2:17; or with the apples which grow in the land of Sodom, on
the border of the dead sea; which possess a beautiful red
appearance, but contain, as some have written, only dust and
ashes, and are inedible, nay, even deleterious to health.
<i>Bijb. Naemb. edition 1632,</i> fol. 881, Col. <i>2,
concerning the name Sodom, ex Philippo Melanchthone. Also
Bernh. Bredenb. in Tract, super Siddim. Also H. Buntung,
Itinerarium sacrw scripturoe, edition 1642, lib. r, pag. 62,
col. 2, etc.</i></p>

<p>O that Satan would show himself, as he really is, and that
the world, too, might come forth without disguise or mask; then
certainly no one possessing reason would allow himself to be
deceived by them. For in Satan nothing would be seen but deadly
snares, traps and murdering daggers for the soul, poisoned
arrows wherewith to destroy everything good in man, through
unbelief, apostasy from God, impenitent obduracy, and despair;
which are followed by a train made up o~ the fears of hell and
horrors of damnation. In the world men would perceive nothing
but vanity, mingled with much vexation, sorrow, grief and
misery, and this in such abundance, that if as many tears could
be wept over it, as there is water in all the sea and all the
rivers, yet the weight of the true sorrow that springs from
them it could not be adequately expressed, for they draw after
them not only temporal but also everlasting miseries.</p>

<p>But, O how lamentable! all this is hid under a beautiful
appearance. Satan appears to be a prince or king, and the world
a noble princess or queen. The servants and servantmaids who
follow them as pages and maids of honor, appear as cavaliers
and ladies, reveling in joy and delight; though, as regards the
soul, they are poor and deformed; yea, meaner than beggars, and
without the true joy which delights the upright soul in
God.*</p>

<p>There is, therefore, great danger of being deceived. O, ye
upright children of God, be on your guard.** Let your
simplicity be coupled with prudence. Your faith as well as your
life are the objects aimed at. If Satan gain the mastery over
you, your precious faith which has been commended to your
keeping as dearly as your soul, is ruined. If ye are overcome
by the world, it will soon put an end to your Christian and
virtuous life, without which latter the best of faith is of no
avail. Care, therefore, my dear friends, equally well for both,
for the one is as important as the other. Faith</p>

<br /><cite>*" It is a very lamentable fact that the things
fraught with danger are not as they appear, and appear not as
they really are. Is not the fish caught with a bait, in which
is concealed the hook? Are not the birds ensnared in the net,
in which berries or grains of corn are scattered for them to
eat? Certainly. Is it to be wondered then, that blind, carnal
and worldly-minded men are deceived and led into perdition by
the wiles of Satan and the alluring lusts of a deceitful
world?</cite> 

<br /><cite>* Meanwhile the prudent knight and valiant
champion of Christ must be on his guard and constantly in arms,
that he may neither by the one nor by the other be diverted
from his noble watch over his soul, which has been entrusted to
him, and thus be led away and cast, either in soul or body, or
according to both, into the direful abyss of perdition.</cite> 

</div><div id="12"> 

<p>without the corresponding life, or the life without the
faith, can, will, and may not avail before God. They are like
two witnesses, who must agree, and of whom the one cannot stand
or be received without the other.</p>

<p>Knowing, then, that we must care for both, there remains
nothing for us but to do it, however, this work must certainly
not only be begun, but also finished, according to the example
of the steadfast martyrs of God; with which finishing, whether
it be brought about in a natural or a violent manner, according
as liberty or persecution brings about we must comfort
ourselves, since it is certain that the crown is not to be
found in the beginning or in the middle, but at the end.*</p>

<p>But as necessary as it is to finish well, so necessary it is
also to begin well, and, having begun, to go on well; for
without a good beginning and a good progress it is impossible
to attain to a good end.</p>

<p>We speak to you, then, most beloved in the Lord, who have
begun with us; received the same faith with us; and with us as
a token of this have been baptized.</p>

<p>Surely, we have made a vow to the Lord, which we cannot
recall, as David sings, "Offer unto God thanksgiving; and pay
thy vows unto the most High." Ps. 50:14.</p>

<p>We have, through faith, received Christ, the Son of God, as
our Prophet, Priest, King, Shepherd, Friend, and Bridegroom;
and in this we must go on and grow stronger. This, Paul teaches
us, saving, "As ye have therefore received Christ Jesus the
Lord, so walk ye in him: rooted and built up in him, and
stablished in the faith, as ye have been taught," etc. Col.
2:6, 7. Hereby we have come from the darkness of ignorance to
the true light of knowledge; which we are commanded to keep in
perpetual remembrance. In this direction tend the words, "But
call to remembrance the former days, in which, after ye were
illuminated, ye endured a great fight of afflictions;" etc.
Heb. 10</p>

<p>32. In short, "Nevertheless, whereto we have already
attained, let us walk by the same rule, let us mind the same
thing." Phil. 3:16."Building up yourselves on your most holy
faith, praying in the Holy Ghost, keep yourselves in the love
of God, looking for the mercy of our Lord Jesus Christ unto
eternal life." Jude 20, 21."Now unto him that is able to keep
you from falling, and to present you faultless before the
presence of his glory with exceeding joy, to the only wise God
our Saviour, be glory and majesty, dominion and power, both now
and ever. Amen." Verses 24 and 25. Isa. 40:30, 31; Phil.
4:13.</p>

<p>We would now commend you, beloved brethren and sisters, to
the Lord and to the word of ,His grace, which is able to build
you up, and to give you an inheritance among all them which are
sanctified. Our work which has been done for your benefit, is
now finished in this respect; that you</p>

<br /><cite>*" O that this would be considered, as it
should! may make good use of it, is our friendly desire
Remember us always in your prayers, until we de part this life;
Phil. 1:23, that God may be gracious unto us now and in
eternity. We hope, on our part, to do the same for you. O that
God would grant, that we all, without one missing, might behold
one another, face to face, in the kingdom of God! I Cor.
13:12.</cite> 

<p>Meantime we rejoice in the salvation of the Lord; for it
sometimes seems to us, as if Heaven had come down upon earth;
or that we were ascending from earth to heaven. II Cor. 12:1-12
etc; or that we, who are still among men, held communion with
God and His holy angels; or that eternal heavenly joy and glory
were offered to us; nay, that we had a foretaste of those thing
which mortal eye hath never seen, nor ear heard, nor heart
experienced, in this life.*</p>

<p>We walk no longer upon earth. with our thoughts;
nevertheless, we are still encompassed by a cloud of earth, a
body of clay, a heavy load of the soul. O, that we were free
from it, and that our soul, liberated from this load, might
return to God in heaven, her true origin! like a freed dove
which has been confined in a strange place, returns to her nest
and abode. But we must wait for this until the time which God
has appointed, comes.</p>

<p>Let us be patient together, then, most beloved in the Lord,
till the day come, which, if we remain faithful unto the end,
will assuredly bring us that which we here wait for in hope.
Then the tears, which we, sighing and longing for the highest
salvation of God, have wept here, shall surely be wiped away
from our eyes; then shall we no longer see through a glass,
darkly, but face to face; then shall the heavenly be shown us
no longer in thought or in spirit, but it shall be given us,
and we be made participants of it, by experience alone, in
truth and in deed. O great and precious subject! we can go no
further: our reason cannot comprehend it; our earthly tongue
cannot express it!</p>

<p><i>Yours very affectionally in the Lord,</i>
<i>TH. J. VAN BRAGHT.</i></p>

<p class="c8">Dort, July the 25th, 1659.</p>
<a name="11"></a>
<h2>TO THE READERS IN GENERAL</h2> 

<p class="c8">Good friends and fellow citizens</p>

<p>Of old, among the heathen, the greatest and highest honors
were accorded to the brave and triumphant warriors, who,
risking their lives in the land of the enemy, conquered, and
carried off the victory. j- Thus <i>Homer,</i> the foremost of
the writers of heroic poetry in Greece, has, in twenty-four
books, extolled and embellished with many eulo-</p>

<br /><cite>* These things can appropriately be understood
to have been caused by meditation and holy contemplation; and
in like manner the passage, "For our conversation is in heaven."
Phil. 3:20.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* The victors at the Olympic games (so-called
from Mount Olympus in Greece, where they were held) were
crowned with wreaths of oak and laurel, which was considered a
great honor.</cite> 

</div><div id="13"> 

<p>gies the warlike deeds of Ulysses. <i>Quintus Curtius</i>
described, in ten books, the deeds of Alexander, the son of
Philip of Macedonia: how triumphantly he conquered and
subjugated Europe, Asia, India, and the countries bordering on
the eastern Ocean, till he ultimately lost his life in
Babylonia. Phttarch composed a voluminous work devoted to the
praise of illustrious and valiant men. <i>Titus Lizius</i> has
written of the Roman heroes, how praiseworthily they acquitted
themselves in behalf of the country of Romulus. Virgilius
<i>Maro</i> and others eulogized the emperor Augustus. And this
usage has obtained from ancient times, and obtains yet, in
every land, yea, throughout the whole world.</p>

<p>We say nothing of the honor and praise, which, many years
after their death, was bestowed in public theatres, upon those
who had been sacrificed to idols, for the narration of it would
consume too much time.</p>

<p>But God, in His Word, goes higher and farther yet. in this
respect. He has caused the conflict, the sufferings, and the
triumphs of His spiritual courageous heroes, children and
favorites to be written, in language the most touching,
glorious and triumphant, as an everlasting memorial for their
descendants, and not only this, but as a full assurance of
their happiness; so that they should always be remembered, and
never forgotten. Yea, the whole volume of holy Scriptures seems
to be nothing else than a book of martyrs, replete with
numerous, according to the flesh, sorrowful, but according to
the spirit, happy, examples of the holy and steadfast martyrs,
whose sufferings, conflicts and triumphs have been recorded in
as holy and worthy manner as it is possible to imagine.</p>

<p>However, they are variously spoken of, according to the
importance of their merits. Some of them suffered and fought
much, but not unto blood, nor unto death; their victory and
their honor are, therefore, not represented as of the highest
degree. Others, however, suffered and fought not only unto
blood and death, for the Lord's name, but even to the greatest
pain and most bitter death. We shall first speak of the former
class, and then of the latter; yet the last shall surpass the
first. <i>Abraham,</i> the father of the faithful, and Isaac
and Jacob, to whom God had promised the possession of the land
of Canaan, lived, nevertheless, as strangers in the land of
promise, and, sometimes, had to endure hunger, thirst and
oppression. Compare Gen. 12:10; 26:20; 31:22, 23 with Heb.
11:9.</p>

<p><i>Moses,</i> the friend of God. had to flee from Pharoah
into the land of Midian, where he sat down by a well. Ex. 2:15.
Afterwards he came very near being stoned by the disobedient in
Israel. Ex. 17:4.</p>

<p><i>David,</i> a man after God's own heart, was several times
in peril of being transfixed to the wall by a javelin, I Sam.
18:11; 19:10; yea, his life was in such danger, that he
complained to Jonathan"There is but a step between me and
death." I Sam. 20:3. For this reason he often called upon God
for help, that he might not meet with an untimely death. Among
other things he says, "Consider and hear me, O Lord my God:
lighten mine eyes, lest I sleep the sleep of death." Ps.
13:2.</p>

<p>In the days of Ahab and Jezebel <i>a hundred prophets of the
Lord</i> had to flee on account of persecution, and were hid in
a cave, and fed with bread and water, by one Obadiah. I Kings
18:13.</p>

<p>Elijah, for the same reason, was compelled to turn eastward
and hide himself by the brook Cherith, that is before Jordan. I
Kings 17:3. His life was afterwards made so bitter to him, that
he fled into the wilderness by Beer-sheba, sat down under a
juniper tree, and prayed,"O Lord, take away my life; for I am
not better than my fathers." I Kings 19:4.</p>

<p>When Elisha, the servant of Elijah, proclaimed the word of
the Lord in the city of Samaria, the king of Samaria swore,
that the head of Elisha should not stand on him that day. II
Kings 6:31.</p>

<p>The prophet <i>Micaiah,</i> who had foretold in the name of
the Lord the truth to the king of Israel, had to eat the bread
of sorrow, and drink the water of sadness, in the prison in
which he was confined, until the king was slain in a battle. I
Kings 22:27-37.</p>

<p><i>Jeremiah</i> was cast into a mire-pit, in which he sunk
down so deeply that he was in danger of death, until he was
saved through Ebed-melech, the Ethiopian. Jer. 38:6-13.</p>

<p>Amos was called a conspirator, and forbidden not only the
city in which he prophesied, but also the land of the ten
tribes of Israel. Amos 7:10-13.</p>

<p>All these, and many more, endured much suffering and many
conflicts yet not unto blood or death. But those of whom we
shall speak now, suffered the bitterness of death, and are
therefore, in this respect, of higher rank than they who have
preceded, just as the loss of life is a severer test than to
suffer in the body or to lose temporal possessions; which is
the only difference between the two classes named.</p>

<p>This bloody army of the spiritual champions, who fought unto
blood and death for the Lord, commenced with the beginning of
the world, as though God's saints were born to suffer and
fight; and as though God had designed, that His church should
be tried from the beginning and all through, even as gold in
the furnace that her purity might become the more manifest.</p>

<p>In the beginning we see Abel who, having in faith offered
unto God a lamb as a sacrifice, was slain in the field by Cain,
his brother. Gen. 4:8; I John 3:12.</p>

<p>In the days of Ahab and Jezebel many <i>prophets of God
were</i> slain by the sword of the rebellious and disobedient
in Israel, so that Elijah thought he alone was left. I Kings
19:14.</p>

<p>When the Spirit of God came upon Zechariah, the son of
Jehoiada, so that he said to the disobedient people, "Why
transgress ye the command-</p>

</div><div id="14"> 

<p>ments, of the Lord, that ye cannot prosper? because ye have
forsaken the Lord, he hath also forsaken you," they took stones
and killed him at the commandment of the king in the court of
the house of the Lord. II Chron. 24:21.</p>

<p>When <i>Urijah,</i> the son of Shemaiah, of Kirjathjearim
prophesied in the name of the Lord against the city of
Jerusalem, his life was sought, so that he fled into Egypt. But
Jehoiakim the king sent men who fetched him back, and he slew
him with the sword, and buried his dead body among the common
people. Jer. 26:20-23.</p>

<p>The god-fearing young men, named <i>Shadrmch, Meshack</i>
and <i>Abed-sego,</i> who refused to worship the image of King
Nebuchadnezzar, were cast, bound, in their coats, their hosen,
and their hats, and their other garments just as they were,
into a fiery furnace, in which they would have been immediately
consumed, if God had not preserved them. Dan. 3:21-23.</p>

<p>The prophet <i>Daniel,</i> because he would not worship king
Darius, but only the true God of Israel, was cast into a den of
lions, to be torn by them; but God protected him as He did
those mentioned before. Dan. 6:16.</p>

<p>Onus, the high priest, who, in a very praiseworthy and
peaceful manner, led and kept the people at Jersualem, so that
foreign kings were moved to honor the city and the temple of
God with gifts, was falsely accused by Simon the Benjamite,
removed from his office by Jason, his own brother, and stabbed
to death without regard of justice and equity by perjured
Andronicus; for the which cause not only the Jews, but also
many Gentiles took great indignation. Compare. II Macc. 3:1, 2
with 4:1, 34.</p>

<p><i>Two women,</i> who had their children circumcised
according to the law of God, were led round about the city,
with their babies tied to their breasts, and then cast down
headlong from the wall: II Maccabees 6:10.</p>

<p>Some who hid themselves in caves, to keep the Sabbath or day
of rest of the Lord, and who would not defend themselves
against the enemies, when it was discovered to Philip the
tyrant, were burned. II Mace. 6:11.</p>

<p>Eleazar, an old man of ninety years, because he would not
sin against the law of God by eating forbidden meat, nor set an
evil example to young persons, nor dissimulate, had to carry
his hoary hairs with blood to the grave, and die a cruel death
through many stripes. II Mace. 6:27-31.</p>

<p><i>Seven brethren,</i> for the same cause, were scourged
with rods and thongs, had their tongues cut out, their hands
and feet cut off, and were roasted in pans, and killed in this
terrible manner to the last one, together with their mother,
who had witnessed it all, and likewise refused to depart from
the law of God. II Macc. 7.</p>

<p>This last mentioned class, from Abel to the Maccabees, are
the true army of God and the heroes of the old covenant who,
for the honor of God and the law of their fathers, did not
spare their lives.</p>

<p>These the writer of the epistle to the Hebrews has in view
when he speaks of the great cloud of witnesses, who, looking
through faith for the fulfillment of the promises of God and
the coming of the Son of God, in the flesh endured all
sufferings, conflicts, and, at last, death, bravely and with an
undismayed heart. But the others, says he meaning the steadfast
saints of God of whom we have spoken, had trial of cruel
mockings and scourgings, yea, moreover, of bonds and
imprisonment: they were stoned, they were sawn asunder, were
tempted, were slain with the sword: they wandered about in
sheepskins and goatskins; being destitute, afflicted,
tormented; of whom the world was not worthy. Heb. 11:36-38.</p>

<p>Hence the whole volume of holy Scriptures, especially the
Old Testament, seems to be almost exclusively, a book of
martyrs, as we have stated in the beginning; appearing from the
examples which we have adduced, and of which we could point out
many more, if it were necessary.</p>

<p>As regards the heroes of the new covenant, that is, those
who since the advent of Christ, and for the testimony of the
holy gospel, have fought the good fight, even unto blood, yea,
death; have finished their course; and steadfastly kept the
faith, notwithstanding the various horrible torments; it would
be impossible to speak briefly of it here, and do the subject
full justice; for which reason we have done this in the
following two books, to which we would refer the reader.</p>

<p>All this was written for a perpetual remembrance of the
steadfast and blessed martyrs; concerning whom it is the will
of God that they should not only always be remembered here
among men, but whom He Himself purposes never to forget but to
remember them with everlasting mercy.</p>

<h2>THE SEQUEL COMPARED WITH THE BEGINNING OF THIS HISTORY</h2> 

<p>We have already spoken of the great honor which custom
conferred upon the brave and triumphant warriors; yet not one
of all these, however great, mighty, valiant and victorious he
may have been, or how great the honor and glory with which he
may have been hailed, could in any wise be compared with the
least martyr who suffered for the testimony of Jesus
Christ.</p>

<p>Even aged and feeble persons, youths and maidens, and such
as were not noticed, yea whom the world did not esteem at all,
did infinitely more through the power of their faith, their
ardent love to God, and, especially, their steadfastness unto
death, whereby they were enabled to forsake, yea, despise, all
visible things, and to put entirely out of their thoughts,
forget, and bid, as it were. eternal adieu to, until the
consummation of all things, money, property, houses, farms,
brothers,</p>

</div><div id="15"> 

<p>sisters, parents, children, dear friends and relatives, yea
their own bodies and lives, and everything pleasing and
delightful according to the flesh; whereas others, if possible,
gladly enjoyed and retained all this, and would fain have
retained it always, or still retain it.</p>

<p>The honor, therefore, which is due to the holy martyrs, is
infinitely greater and better than that of earthly heroes; just
as the fight they fought, was infinitely more profitable, and
their victory, as coming from the hand of God, infinitely more
praiseworthy and glorious.*</p>

<p>Through earthly wars countries and their inhabitants are
destroyed, the innocent killed, the fugitive robbed of their
property, and much weeping and mourning caused among those who
remain. But through the warfare of the martyrs, at least
through the martyrs themselves, the prosperity of countries and
their inhabitants was promoted because of the fervent prayers
offered up by the martyrs to God for those who did them harm
and for the common welfare of all the inhabitants.</p>

<p>The life of the innocent, who otherwise would have had to
die, yea, their spiritual and eternal life, was obtained and
preserved through the medicine of their good teachings,
admonitions, examples, and unwavering continuance to the end of
life.</p>

<p>The estates of men generally, both according to the soul and
the body, they improved and multiplied, causing them to
increase thirty, sixty, and even a hundred fold, by their
uprightness, fidelity, benevolence, compassion, and
incomparable mercifulness toward their fellow men.</p>

<p>They caused no one to lament or weep, by doing him the least
damage or injury, but they greeted everybody, even their
enemies, with kindness, embraced them with the arms of love,
and gave them cause to rejoice and be glad, outwardly as well
as inwardly, bodily and spiritually, here and (God granting
them mercy) also hereafter.</p>

<p>O most delightful warfare, which did injury to none, but
good to all. O ye blessed heroes, who fought this fight I No
princes or kings can be compared to you; for all the honors won
by earthly heroes on earth shall vanish with the earth; but
your honor is an everlasting honor; your glory shall never
cease, yea, shall endure, as long as God endures, whom you
served.</p>

<h2>ADDRESS TO THE WORLDLY-MINDED</h2> 

<p>Come now, ye earthly-minded and ungodly, and learn here to
become heavenly and godly-minded;</p>

<br /><cite>* God is worthier than the creatures; heaven is
worthier than the earth; and the soul is more excellent than
the body; in the same manner the divine, heavenly and spiritual
warfare is worthier and more excellent than the creatural,
earthly and corporeal warfare; this is beyond contradiction."He
that is slow to anger is better than the mighty; and he that
ruleth his spirit than he that taketh a city." Prov. 16:32. Of
this the apostle Paul glories, when he says; ' I therefore so
run, not as uncertainly so fight I, not as one that beateth the
air; but I keep under my body, and bring it into subjection;'
etc. I Cor. 9:26, 27. This praiseworthy fight, when he had
brought it to a good end, caused him to say about the time of
his death,"I have fought a good fight, I have finished my
course, I have kept the faith: henceforth there is laid up for
me a crown of righteousness, which the Lord the righteous
judge, shall giveme at that day," etc. II Tim. 4:7, 9. ye
impenitent, learn here to repent, and believe in Jesus Christ.
Hither must come also all the selfwilled, who, from a
prejudiced opinion of their own do not consider the external
commandments and ordinances of Christ as necessary, saying that
there is not more required than repentance and faith, or a
so-called irreproachable civil life. These shall learn here
that the external commandments of Christ must be united with
the internal, that is, the signs with the things signified; or,
to express it clearly: one must be baptized on his faith and
repentance; must keep the Lord's Supper in remembrance of Him,
etc.; for herein the holy martyrs were to them an example.*</cite> 

<p>Here the passionate must learn patience and meekness from
the most patient and meek, who endured without murmuring the
greatest reproach and ignominy, yea, even death. Here the
unmannered are taught modesty; the proud, humility; the
discontented, contentment; the avaricious, benevolence; the
insatiably rich, voluntary poverty; those who live after their
lusts, the forsaking of all carnal desires; the irreligious,
piety; and the wavering and inconstant, steadfastness unto the
end in all these things.</p>

<p>All this can be learned here, not so much by words as by
deeds, from those who not only commenced the above virtues, but
continued in them unto the end, yea, confirmed them through
their death, and sealed them with their blood.</p>

<h2>TO THE YOUNG, THE MIDDLE-AGED, AND THE OLD</h2> 

<p>Besides, persons of every age may enter this school of
practice in virtue; the young, the middleaged and the old, all
shall be led to true godliness by the living examples of those
who went before them.</p>

<p>The young people who live after their lusts, and have not
come to the light, will see here, that many of their equals,
yea, who were only fourteen, fifteen, eighteen, twenty years
old, or even younger, had at that age already forsaken the
vanities of the world and the lusts of youth; nay, some so
early that they had not yet come to know them, much less to
practice, them; but that, on the contrary, so soon as they
reached their understanding, they remembered their Creator and
Saviour, bowed their youthful members under His yoke, accepted
His commandments, obeyed Him with all their heart, and
surrendered themselves willingly to Him, so that they, for His
sake, did not spare their lives unto death. Eccles. 12:1; Prov.
23:26.</p>

<p>The middle-aged, who, like the firmly-rooted oaks of Bashan,
are so deeply engrossed in, and joined to, earthly affairs and
household cares, that it is next to an impossibility to detach
them there-</p>

<br /><cite>* As we cannot look at heaven and earth at the
same time, nor stand at once upon the mountain and in the
valley, even so it is impossible to serve God and the world at
the same time. Our Saviour says, "Thou shalt love the Lord thy
God with all thy heart, and with all thy soul, and with all thy
mind. Matt. 22:37. Concerning this it should be observed that
if we must love God with all our heart, then no love for the
world or sinful flesh may remain.</cite> 

</div><div id="16"> 

<p>from because of their inseparable desire for the goods of
this world; will see here people in the flower and prime of
life, who might have gained much, but sought it not, because
they would not miss the heavenly gain. These had a contented
heart; they were clothed with coats of skins, only against cold
and nakedness; they lived in buts or plain cottages, to be
sheltered from rain, wind, hail and snow; they ate bread to
satisfy their hunger, and drank water to quench their thirst;
more they had not.*</p>

<p>There they shall see that these contented people surrendered
to God the strength of their bodies, their station in life, and
whatever they had; so that they, having become members of His
church, esteemed it greater riches to suffer with the same the
reproach of Christ, nay death itself, than to enjoy the
pleasures of sin for a season.</p>

<p>The aged, who have neglected their youth and middle life,
and are now come to the eleventh hour, ** and yet are still not
working in the Lord's vineyard, may here behold persons whose
hoary head is a crown of glory, since they are found in the way
of righteousness; who devoted their feeble powers, the short
span of their life, yea their last breath, to the service and
praise of their God and Saviour, watching and waiting for the
hour of their departure and the day of their redemption,
that</p>

<br /><cite>* Surely no man in the world can derive
advantage from the abundance of his temporal possessions over
and above the necessaries of life. Why then, the manifold
anxieties and cares to provide for the future in regard to the
things which concern the body; since nature is so soon
separated by death from all this?"Seek ye first the kingdom of
God." Matt. 6:33."Casting all your care upon him," (the Lord)
etc. I Pet. 5:9.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* Though it is not advisable in temporal things
to put off doing the day's labor until evening, yet it is
better late than never. This holds good also in spiritual
things. they might become an acceptable offering to the Lord.
They longed for the clock to strike twelve, so as to be
admitted by the Lord and be seated at His glad feast.</cite> 

<p>When two of our last martyrs, Jan Claess of Alckmaer, and
Lucas Lamberts of Beveren, an old man of eighty-seven years,
received their sentence of death, at Amsterdam, Holland, in the
forenoon of a certain day in the year 1544, Jan Claess said to
the old man, Lucas Lamberts, "My dear brother, fear now neither
fire nor sword. O what a glad feast shall be prepared for us,
before the clock strikes twelve." See II Book, year 1544.</p>

<p>All this and infinitely more the worldly-minded, ignorant
and unbelieving are taught here. O that each of them would
consider this well!</p>

<p>Men are more easily converted by good examples than by good
teachings, because examples are more impressive; yet here you
have both.</p>

<p>Let every one come hither, therefore; and no one remain
behind; all have need to be taught in the way of salvation; no
one would choose to be unsaved. Here you shall see the
patience, the faith, and the constancy of the saints. Have
compassion upon your own souls, whom the Lord loves so dearly,
seeking to lead them to heaven; yea for whom the Son of God has
shed His precious blood, thus purchasing them with so great a
price. We would commend this matter most urgently to you as
well as to ourselves. O Lord, help! O Lord, let it prosper!</p>

<p>But it is now time that we turn our attention to giving
instructions concerning the proper understanding and use of
this work.</p>

<p><i>TH. J. VAN BRAGHT</i></p>

<p>Dort., July the 27th, 1659.</p>


<h1>AUTHOR'S INTRODUCTION: SUMMARY OF THE FOLLOWING WORK</h1>

<p>This work comprises two books, each of them containing a
different and independent topic. The first is a treatise of the
holy baptism and of that which pertains to it. The second is a
historical account of the holy martyrs who suffered on account
of baptism, or, generally, for the testimony of Jesus
Christ.</p>

<p>These two topics have been briefly, yet not  less clearly,
treated, throughout, in every century, from thin days of Christ
up to our present time; and this order has been followed:
through every century first an account is given, through
faithful and authentic authors, of the subject of holy baptism,
and the proper administration of the same during that time; to
which we have each time added our own comments, explanations,
refutations of objections, etc., then every century is again
taken up, and an account given of the holy martyrs who suffered
during that time. So that each century treating of holy baptism
is followed by a century treating of the holy martyrs; and thus
from beginning to end.</p>

<p>This, then, is a summary and the order of the following
work; which we shall directly explain more fully, and give our
reason for doing so.</p>

</div><div id="17"> 

<h2>OF THE TITLE OF THIS WORK: THE BLOODY THEATRE OF THE ANABAPTISTS, etc.</h2> 

<p>The first part of the title, consisting of the words, THE
BLOODY THEATRE, will, we think, not be subjected to any serious
criticism, since no one can dispute that all that is treated
here, so far as the martyrs are concerned, is a representation
or exhibition of the blood, suffering, and death of those who,
for the testimony of Jesus Christ, and for their conscience'
sake, shed their blood exchanging their life for a cruel
death.</p>

<p>But the second part, consisting of the words,"OF THE
ANABAPTISTS," may easily meet with some opposition, because
some will not admit that the Anabaptists, or those who maintain
such a confession as they do, have existed through every
century, from the days of Christ up to the present time; and,
what is still more, that they have had their martyrs. But in
order to treat the matter systematically and in the best
manner, we shall first speak of the name, and then of the thing
itself.</p>

<h2>OF THE NAME: ANABAPTISTS.*</h2> 

<p>The name"Anabaptist" was really not accepted by them by
choice or desire, but of necessity; for their proper name, if
we consider well the thing in connection, should be,
Christminded, Apostle-minded, or Gospel-minded, Gal. 3:26, 27,
29, as they were called of old, yea, many centuries ago,
because their religion agreed with the doctrine of Christ, the
Apostles, and the holy Gospel; which appears from the
confession of faith which they from time to time have
published, and which we, as far as we know them, are ready to
defend, if necessity requires it; of which also others boast;
but how they prove it, they may answer for themselves, and the
impartial and intelligent may judge.</p>

<p>The name Anabaptists which is now applied to them, has but
lately come into use, deriving its origin from the matter of
holy baptism, concerning which their views differ from those of
all, socalled, Christendom. In what this difference consists,
we will now briefly, and in the sequel more fully state.</p>

<p>We could have wished that they had been called by another
name, that is, not only after the holy baptism, but after their
whole religion; but since it is not so, we can content
ourselves with the thought that it is not the name, but the
thing itself, which justifies the man. For this reason we have
applied this name to them throughout the work, that they may be
known and distinguished from others.**</p>

<br /><cite>* The word"Anabaptist" is here used to signify
the same as"Taufgesinate" in the German, and"Doopsgesinde" in
the Dutch language, for which the English language affords no
better term, the literal signification of"Doopsgesinde
being"baptism-minded."</cite> 

<br /><cite>* Ancient Israel was called the circumcision
because all Israelites were circumcised. I Cor. 7:19; Gal. 5:6;
6:15.</cite> 

<h2>OF HOLY BAPTISM, AND WHY WE HAVE PREFERRED IT TO ALL OTHER ARTICLES, IN OUR HISTORY</h2> 

<p>We have chosen holy baptism in preference to any other
article of the Christian and evangelical religion</p>

<p>1. Because it is the only sign and proof of incorporation
into the visible Christian church, without which no one,
whoever he be, or whatever he may profess, or how separated and
pious a life he may lead, can be recognized as a true member of
the Christian church. This is fully, yet without controversy,
shown and confirmed in the following history.*</p>

<p>2. Because it is, beyond contradiction, the only article on
account of which others call us Anabaptists. For, since all
other so-called Christians have, yet without true foundation,
this in common that they baptize infants; while with us the
baptism only which is accompanied by faith and a penitent life,
according to the word of God, is administered, to adults; it
follows, that with us such persons are baptized who have
received baptism in their childhood, without faith and
repentance; who, when they believe and repent, are again, or at
least truly baptized with us; because with us their previous
baptism, being without true foundation, and without the word of
God, is not considered baptism at all.**</p>

<p>3. Because the imperial decrees (when some so-called
Christians began to tyrannize) in the days of Theodosius and
Honorius, A. D. 413, were issued and proclaimed everywhere
expressly against the Anabaptists and those who were
rebaptized; namely against such who maintained the
aforementioned article, as the Anabaptists of today do; which
was also the case in the last persecution, during the reign of
Emperor Charles V., more than eleven centuries afterwards, A.
D. 1535; when all who, having been baptized in infancy, had
been rebaptized upon their faith and repentance; or who
maintained these views, were punished with a severe death, as
may be seen in our account of baptism, and of the martyrs, for
the years 413 and 1535.</p>

<p>4. Because it would not have been possible to write in
detail of all the other articles of the Christian faith and
worship of God, as they, through all the centuries from the
days of Christ up to the present time, have been believed and
practiced according to the manner of the Anabaptists of this
day; without going beyond the bounds of the largest book; since
no book could possibly be printed</p>

<br /><cite>* Paul asked the Church at Rome, whether they
did not know that as many as were baptized (or incorporated
through baptism) into Jesus Christ, were baptized into His
death? Rom. 6:3. Compare with Gal. 3:27; I C or. 12:13.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* Notwithstanding Philips of Marnix; then, F.
Beza: then Menso Alting then, Abr. A. Doreslaer; and then, the
latest translators of the Bible, have come to another
conclusion concerning the rebaptizing of the twelve Ephesian
disciples who had been baptized by John, Acts 19:1-3; there
has, nevertheless, as far as we have been able to discover,
before the time of P. Marnix yea, for more than fifteen hundred
years, never been a single Greek or Latin divine who doubted
that those Ephesians were baptized again, because the first
time they had been baptized without having a knowledge of the
holy Ghost.</cite> 

</div><div id="18"> 

<p>or planned on so large a scale, as to contain all this;
wherefore we have been obliged to observe moderation in
writing, throughout, so as not to become diffuse, or overstep
the bounds of a reasonable book.</p>

<h2>THE REASON WHY WE HAVE POINTED OUT THE ARTICLE OF HOLY BAPTISM, AND THE ADHER ENCE OF ANABAPTISM, FROM THE DAYS OF CHRIST TO THE PRESENT TIME:</h2> 

<p>For more than a century up to the present day, people have
been made to believe that the Anabaptists contemptuously
so-called, have but recently sprung from some erring
spirit,-some say, from the Munsterites,* etc.; whose
fabulous faith, life and conduct, the true Anabaptists have
never recognized; for no one will ever be able to show with
truth, so far as we have been able to ascertain, that the
articles of religion of those Munsterites, whereby they have
drawn the attention of the world upon themselves, and which
consist in commotion, rebellion and such like, have ever been
adopted or acknowledged as good, much less professed and lived,
by any formal church of the Anabaptists, or by any well known
member of the same. But, on the contrary, they have from that
time on and ever since declared that they would have neither
lot nor part with them or their transactions; and admonished
one another, not to follow such ways, because these could not
stand the test before God and His Word, nor before the mind of
a true and meek Christian, as being contrary to the Gospel of
Christ, and the most holy faith.</p>

<p>Were we disposed to pay them in their own coin, we might
say: The Munsterites were fellow members of those who sanction
war and claim that one must propagate and defend his religion
with the sword. For this is what they did; but <i>we</i> speak
against it with heart, soul, and mind.</p>

<p>Nevertheless, the people were made to believe these things;
and therefore, many simple people without experience or
knowledge have adopted the above opinion, simply because their
pastor, preacher, or teacher told them so; hence, many slanders
have sometimes been, and are still, spewed out like bitter
gall, against the so-called Anabaptists, who are despised and
rejected by everybody.</p>

<p>In order to show that the doctrines of the Anabaptists,
especially that article an account of which they are called
Anabaptists, did not originate with the Munsterites, or any
other erring spirits who have arisen in these last times, but
have proceeded from the scource of truth-Christ and His
apostles, we have placed their origin in the time of Christ,
and shown that at that time already, this article, with other
articles of the Christian religion, was taught and practiced;
and also after the death of the apostles, through every age,
even to the present time.</p>

<p>Now the point will be to give the reasons why we have called
this whole work, with all the persons contained therein, after
the Anabaptists; from which, as the second question, might be
asked: whether all the persons mentioned, confessors as well as
martyrs, none excepted, confessed the same as what the
Anabaptists of this day confess? or whether any believed,
practiced, or maintained higher or lower, more or less, in this
or that article?</p>

<p>We shall treat these matters separately, and one after the
other, giving the <i>reasons</i> as well as the
<i>answers.</i></p>

<br /><cite>(Compare tract Onnooselheyds Peyl. etc., edit. Hart. Anno
1631. Annex Hist. Mart. a little before the introduction; with
the various attestations of Bernhard Rotman; Godfrey
Stralensis, Rollins, and other Lutheran leaders at Munster;
whose writings concerning this matter were published shortly
after the transaction and have also come down to us. Also, the
notes of Melanchton, <i>Milo,</i> Sleydan; and also in the
great atlas, old edition.]</cite>

 <br /><cite><p>* Aside from the fact, that the Anabaptists did
not spring from the Munsterites, but have existed through all
the times of the Gospel, as has been sufficiently shown, we
would, moreover, state that the pernicious and evil proceedings
which took place at Munster about the year 1534, can, according
to the truth, not be laid to the charge of the Anabaptists, who
at that time, like innocent doves fleeing before the talons of
the hawk into clefts of the rock, or into hollow trees, had to
hide themselves but must be placed to the account of some
Lutheran preachers, to whom a certain"Jan van Le den" had
recommended and taught Anabaptism. According to old and
authentic authors these proceedings happened as follows:</p>

   <p>In the year 1532, Bernaert Rotman, a Lutheran (at that time
called Evangelical) preacher, began to preach at Munster in St.
Maurice church, against the doctrine of the Papists; when,
however, the Papists of Munster came to know this, they bribed
him with money, to go away.</p>

<p>But a few months afterward repenting of it, he came back,
and drew such crowds, that he, being sustained by some of the
chief men of the city of Munster, erected his pulpit in the
entry of the church. He also sought to have other churches
opened in order that this doctrine might be propagated the more
widely;-if this were not done, they should be opened by force,
etc. In the mean time, on the 14th of February, 1533, there
arrived at Munster, Jan van Leyden, a strange, odd and
opinionated man, who, though he maintained baptism upon faith,
yet in most other points never agreed with the Anabaptists. To
be brief, after much controversy he brought the matter so far,
that not only Bernaert Rotman, who had at first opposed him,
but also his colleague, H. Staprede, and various others, began
to preach against the practice of infant baptism. On the other
hand, Jan van Leyden learned from them, especially from B.
Roman, the doctrine that one might defend and propagate his
religion with external weapons.</p>

<p>In the mean while, the magistrates, apprehending serious
mischief which might be expected to spring from this, forbade
those who they thought were giving the most occasion to it, the
city. They, indeed, left the city, yet on the instigation of B.
Rotman, entered it again by another way.</p>

<p>Finally matters came to sack a pass, that the
aforementioned, and other supporters of the Lutheran (or
miscalled Evangelical) doctrine, who had become agreed with Jan
van Leyden, in the article of baptism collected together and
resolved to bring about a total restoration of religion;
deciding also, that to this end, as it could not be effected
quietly, it should be done by force of arms; further, that in
Munster the beginning should be made.</p>

<p>Jan van Leyden was constituted the leader and through B.
Rotman s proclamation much ignorant and simple people from the
surrounding places were summoned, to help carry out said
restoration, which however was not made known to them at first.
These were promised that in Munster, they should receive
tenfold for their goods which tLey had to aandon on this
account</p>

<p>Without loss of time they opposed the power of the bishop.
They erected fortifications, seeking not only to defend
themselves, but also to exterminate their opponents, that is,
the true adherents of Rome and the Pope. But matters took quite
a different turn from what they had intended! they were
defeated and the bishop and those of the city triumphed.</p>

<p>Rotman himself, (notwithstanding that his associates were in
equal distress) despairing of his life, ran to the enemies to
be killed by them; so that he might not, like Jan van Leyden,
be taken alive, and come to a shameful end.</p>

<p>This, then, was the tragedy enacted at Munster; the
instigation, progress and execution can and may not be
attributed to the go' Anabaptists, but to the first-risen
Lutherans, especially to B. Rotman and his followers. Had this
restoration been successful, the Lutherans would not have been
ashamed of it; on the contrary they would have boasted of it,
and never would have let the honor of it remain in the hands of
the Anabaptists. To, this alludes the following old ditty:</p>

<p class="c3">Had successful been the glorious restoration,</p>

<p class="c3">Never would the much-despised Anabaptists</p>

<p class="c3">Have obtained the honor: Luther, or some
other,</p>

<p class="c3">By the sword of Rotman, lord would have been
crowned.</p></cite>

</div><div id="19"> 

<h2>REASON WHY WE HAVE CALLED THIS WHOLE WORK AFTER THE ANABAPTISTS</h2> 

<p>The reason which has induced us is twofold:</p>

<p>1. Because, as we have shown clearly, there have been
persons in every century, from the beginning of the Gospel all
along, who have believed and taught the article of holy
baptism, with other articles noted in the margin-on account of
which the Anabaptists have received this name-in the very same
manner as the Anabaptists, and have, each in his time,
instructed, engrafted, and confirmed their contemporaries
therein, as may, be seen in the whole history, especially in
the first fifteen centuries.</p>

<p>2. Because we have not found mentioned in the writings of
authentic authors anything concerning those persons whom we
have noted as true witnesses, which conflicts with the
above-mentioned doctrines of the Anabaptists. And whenever
something has been laid to their charge, which is not in
harmony with the uprightness of the faith professed by them, we
have shown that the witnesses to such charge were not authentic
or acceptable; or that the things brought against them, were
committed by them not after but before their conversion; or
that, if they at any time have fallen into them, they truly
forsook them before their death, and from which all this
appears.</p>

<p>But whenever we have found that any, as regards the faith
professed, were actually guilty of serious errors, offensive
misconceptions, or bad actions, for which the above excuses
could not be brought forward; we have dropped such entirely,
and not mentioned them; that the pious and most holy witnesses
of Jesus Christ might not be defiled with their unclean and
unholy leaven.</p>

<h2>ANSWER TO THE QUESTION, WHETHER ALL THE PEOPLE MENTIONED IN THIS WORK, NONE EXCEPTED, HAVE CONFESSED THE SAME THAT THE ANABAPTISTS OF THIS DAY CONFESS</h2> 

<p>Concerning this we say that a distinction must be made
between the first and last martyrs;-not that they have differed
in the faith, for this we have not found; but because they were
not all examined in regard to the same articles of faith; and
consequently did not reply in one and the same manner; and this
from the fact, that some suffered among pagans, some among the
Jews and the Mohammedans, and some among the false Christians,
that is, the Romanists.</p>

<p>Those who suffered among the pagans were, for the most part,
examined concerning the first article of the Christian faith,
wherein we confess, "I believe in one God, the Father, the
Almighty Creator of heaven and earth," etc.; and if the
apprehended Christians confessed only this, viz., that they
believed in one God, they were condemned to death for the
pagans recognized many gods. hose who suffered among the Jews
or the Mohammedans were examined concerning the second article,
wherein we confess: I believe"in Jesus Christ, the only
begotten Son of God, our Lord, who was conceived of the holy
Ghost," etc. When they had confessed this, they had also
forfeited their lives; for the Jews and the Mohammedans do not
acknowledge Christ as the Son of God, much less as His
only-begotten (or own) Son, and that He was conceived of the
Holy Ghost.</p>

<p>On account of this article many believers were killed among
the Arians.</p>

<p>Those who suffered among the false Christians, especially
among the Romanists, were examined concerning nearly all the
articles of faith, in regard to which difference of opinion
existed between us and them, viz., the incarnation of Christ,
the office of the secular authorities, the swearing of oaths,
etc., but above all others, the article of holy baptism,
namely, whether they were denied infant baptism? or, whether
they were rebaptized? which latter principally caused their
death; as sentence of death was immediately passed upon them,
and their life taken.</p>

<p>Besides these articles (on account of which they also had to
suffer among the followers of Zwingli and Calvin) the Papists
laid before them also, either for denial or for confession, the
manifold papal institutions, which at different times and above
and contrary to the most holy faith and life, had originated,
and been forced, as necessary articles for salvation, upon the
innocent plain, and orthodox people, that they should believe,
and live according to them, such as the invocation of deceased
saints; sacrifices for the dead; pilgrimages to the sepulchers
of the saints; the worshiping and salutation of images made
with hands; masses; vigils; ceremonial night watches; choral
prayers whether paternosters, Ave Marias, or rosaries, or
others; the making the sign of the cross; sprinkling with holy
water; _the tonsure; the wearing of white, gray, black, or
other clothes; the chasuble; and innumerable other things which
it is almost impossible to mention.</p>

<p>When the orthodox martyrs were examined by the Papists
concerning these and similar matters, they must necessarily
express their opinion in regard to them, and, therefore, unfold
the articles of their own faith, which were opposed to them; so
that on such occasions frequently the whole foundation and all
the particulars of the saving faith which they held in common
with us, were discussed.</p>

<p>This is the reason, therefore, that only those martyrs who
suffered among the false Christians, especially among the
Papists, made confession of nearly all the articles of faith;
while all the others, though faithful and sincere confessors of
the evangelical truth, who sacrificed their lives among the
pagans, Jews, or Mohammedans, confessed but very little
thereof: because they were not examined concerning them.</p>

</div><div id="20"> 

<p>Moreover, at first there were not so many articles of faith
concerning which different opinions prevailed, than there were
in later times; for which there was a reason; for, since in the
beginning there were not so many apostates and different sects
than in later times; the points which had to be asserted
against those who disputed them originally, were fewer than
afterwards, when many churches began to spring up, and each
defended his own; from which the true believers had to
distinguish themselves by their confession of the controverted
articles of faith.</p>

<p>No true Christian of the Anabaptists of this day will
stumble at the fact that the first martyrs have not confessed
so many articles of faith as the last ones, or as are confessed
now; which, as has been said, is founded on a satisfactory
reason.</p>

<p>However we have found, and are fully satisfied therewith,
that although, for the reason already mentioned, some have
confessed more, and others less, of the articles of faith, they
notwithstanding did not differ from each other in regard to
their purpose and meaning; we speak with reference to those
things which are of considerable importance, and may be
considered as necessary for salvation.</p>

<p>But should it nevertheless be true, that one or the other
(whereof one have not heard), on account of the earliness,
degeneracy, or darkness of preceding times, was not truly
enlightened; either in the faith or in the knowledge of it, or
possessed some serious weakness or deficiency; but
nevertheless, keeping the true foundation of salvation, that
is, Christ,* though weak and frail, died, sacrificing his life
through a violent death; with a good purpose, to the honor of
God, the edification of his fellow brethren, above all, to the
preservation of his own soul; such a one should, according to
the nature of love, be excused, and counted a true martyr,**
because of his entirely good intention, and his total
renunciation, even unto death, of his possessions as well as
his own self; for which the Lord has promised everlasting life,
yea, the crown of life, Matt. 19:29, compared with Rev.
2:10, "Be thou faithful unto death, and I will give thee a crown
of Life."</p>

<p>This is what we have thought proper to call attention to in
regard to the title and contents of these two books; but before
we dismiss the subject, it behooves us to make a brief
statement in regard to the preceding or old work.</p>

<h2>STATEMENT IN REGARD TO THE OLD WORK</h2> 

<p>It was our intention to leave the second book, that is, the
history of the martyrs from the year 1524 to 1614, unaltered,
just as it was published before to the service of our fellow
brethren in the faith; except that we proposed to add a few more
martyrs of the same faith, inserting them where it might be
suitable. But our original design in this matter has been far
transcended, since we, besides the writing of the whole first
book, have added not only a few, but many, martyrs to the
second book; and as many of the death sentences of the martyred
persons, which we have recently obtained, did not agree in date
and other circumstances with the respective accounts contained
in the old book, some of them differing very greatly from each
other; which came from the fact, that, when the martyrs were
put to death, the rest of the believers of the place were
frequently scattered on account of the existing danger, in
consequence of which neither the time nor the manner of their
death could be recorded: therefore we have, whenever we
discovered such discrepancies, rewritten the original accounts
and ordered them according to the time and manner indicated in
the death sentences recorded by the papal and other clerks of
the criminal court; in order that even the adversaries, if
possible, might become convinced by their own testimony of the
shedding of the blood of the saints.</p>

<p>This was no small task and burden for us; yet we have
labored through and finished it. (thanks be to the Lord for His
grace). But how this was accomplished, we let the impartial and
intelligent judge.</p>

<p>However, we consider it certain, that we shall not escape
criticism; the world, being evil, is wont to criticize
everything good. Besides, we have not aimed to please
everybody, but to write the truth; and this we think, we have
done without passion, prejudice, or partiality.*</p>

<p>If anybody is displeased with this book, he may know that we
have written it only for ourselves and for the well-disposed.
With the evil-minded we have nothing to do. Therefore we shall
console ourselves in regard to whatever we may meet with on
this account. God and a good conscience shall be our
support.</p>

<p class="c3">The captious I cannot escape,</p>

<p class="c3">Who fault will always find</p>

<p class="c3">But yet, my heart shall never fear,</p>

<p class="c3">Since God my purpose knows.</p>

<p class="c3">Yea, Lord! Thou knowest all my thoughts;</p>

<p class="c3">To Thee my cause I trust.</p>

<p class="c3">I care not what my haters say,</p>

<p class="c3">So free my conscience is.</p>

<p>Far be it from us, however, to acquit ourselves of all
liability to err. No man in this world is so infallible, that
he may not at some time err.** We consider it to be certain;
therefore, that we, here and there (though not intentionally,
but innocently), have erred; and this the more, as we have</p>

<br /><cite>*"For other foundation can no man lay than that
is laid, which is Jesus Christ" (I Cor. 3:11). On this
foundation built all the true martyrs, of whom we have given an
account; and unanimously kept it.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* For this reason a considerable error, which
could not be allowed in a common member of the church not
laboring under trial and oppression, might be tolerated in a
martyr.</cite>

<br /><cite>* Justus Lipsius says in the preface to his
first book of"Steadfastness", "Few readers will suffice me; one
suffices me; none suffices me also: for I have written this for
myself." But this we leave to him, who had written it only for
himself.</cite> 

<br /><cite>*"Would to God ye could bear with me a little in
my folly" (II Cor. 11:1), says the apostle Paul, with whose
wisdom we should not compare ours in the thousandth part.</cite> 

</div><div id="21"> 

<p>compiled and written this to a great extent while we were in
distress, severe illness, yea, on the bed of sickness, when
death threatened us; for which reason we ought to be the more
excused, though we, for truth's sake, do not seek it.</p>

<p>If any one, therefore, no matter who, provided he does it in
sincerity and good faith, can point out to us any errors,* we
will consider the matter, forsake the evil, and follow the
good. But if it is apparent to us, that not sincerity and
faithfulness (that is, love of truth), but envy and ill will
caused by prejudiced partiality against our faith, are the
prime motors in the case, we shall not very easily be induced
to give it closer consideration; but it shall only the more
confirm and assure us of the truth of what we have written and
do believe.</p>

<p>No one must expect, that if he, for the purpose of refuting
or assailing with the pen, attacks this book (that is, as far
as the work which we have written is concerned) in one or the
other point, and not in its entire extent; we shall readily
answer or oppose him; for we do not consider such a procedure
worth the trouble of replying to it. But should the whole work
be attacked or contested, yet so that no alteration is made in
the language, nor anything essential left out, we would state,
that, if God will spare our health and grant us strength, we
will attend to the matter; since, for the sake of our brethren
and companions, we shall, like Paul, not be ashamed of the
Gospel of Christ, either to reply to, or refute the things
advanced, or to do anything else we may deem necessary to the
service of the defenseless and oppressed little flock of
Christ.</p>

<p>But judgment shall return unto righteousness and all the
upright in heart shall follow it. Psalm 94:15.</p>

<h2>VALEDICTORY</h2> 

<p>Hitherto hath the Lord helped us.** We have longed much for
the hour that would bring us to the conclusion of out work.
This hour has come; and therefore we will now rest.</p>

<p>Receive this according to the nature of love. We have had
naught in view, but that it should promote the honor of God,
and your, our, and the salvation of all men. Your and our days
are drawing to a close. Oh, may God grant, that the end of your
and our life may be the beginning of the true and blissful
life; that the setting of your and our days which are but
misery and vanity, may be the</p>

<br /><cite>* It is always easier to criticise a thing than
to do it better. Therefore Karel van Mauder, at the completion
of a great -work, adds these words, "Ye stiff-necked critics
must first consider that too great a mountain lies between
doing and saying, before you accuse a free conscience with your
audacious babbling. Many have mouth enough to contemn the work
of everybody; but not the hands to make something better.
Saying is mere wind: but doing I esteem. We say the same, and
will let the matter rest here.</cite> 

<br /><cite>*"Then Samuel took a stone. and set it between
Mizpeh and Shen, and called the name of it Ebenezer" (that is,
stone of help),"saying, Hitherto hath the Lord helped us" (I
Sam. 7:12). Thus say we in reference to our history. rising of
the eternal and glorious day of immortal glory.*</cite> 

<p>O Lord, bless us and all who may read this work; that they
and we, in the true faith and with a godly conversation, may
spread abroad Thine honor, and afterwards, being honored by
Thee, receive a like reward.</p>

<p>We look forward with joy to the day which can bring us
consolation. It will deliver us from this evil and perverse
world. It will bring us to the true rest, where unrest will be
no more. It will give us what our heart desires. O that this
time had come already!</p>

<p class="c3">The Lord Almighty calleth me</p>

<p class="c3">My earthly work is done; and now</p>

<p class="c3">I long to get away from thee,</p>

<p class="c3">O world so vain! O house of pain!</p>

<p class="c3">For though my flesh in thee yet moves,</p>

<p class="c3">The soul immortal heavenward tends.**</p>

<p>This was spoken by one of the ancients, when he thought that
he had finished a good work, and that the hour of departure was
near at hand. Certainly a great confidence springing from a
wellmeaning heart. We say in the same manner: Our earthly work
is now finished. We do not know that we shall be able to do
much more good upon earth. But as long as we are here, we hold
ourselves bound to our Creator, being confident that we have
not lived in vain. We have, in our weakness, done what we could
for the promotion of our own and the welfare of our fellow
men.</p>

<p>Be then, O God, gracious unto the least of Thy servants, and
grant that none of his natural or spiritual kindred, or of
those who have been instructed by him, may be lost; but that
they all may come to the rest of Thy saints and be eternally
saved.</p>

<p>With this, beloved reader, whoever you may be, we commend
you to the Lord; and to you we commend the consideration of the
things which you will find here; feeling assured that if you
will do so, you will certainly receive that for which we have
prayed the Lord in your behalf.</p>

<p>Yours very affectionately, as seeking your soul.</p>

<p>Dort, July the 31st, 1659</p>

<hr />

<br /><cite>* The end of our work must remind us of the end
of life; and what we may yet lack in this, we shall ask of the
Lord,"Lord, make me to know mine end, and the measure of my
days, what it is; that I may know how frail I am" (Psa.
39:4).</cite> 

<br /><cite>* Then say we with Job, "I know that my Redeemer
liveth, and that he shall stand at the latter day upon the
earth: and though after my skin worms destroy this body, yet in
my flesh shall I see God; whom I shall see for myself, and mine
eyes shall behold, and not another" (Job 19:25-27) and with
Paul: 'We know that if our earthly house of this tabernacle
were dissolved, we have a building of God, a house not made
with hands, eternal in the heavens. For in this we groan,
earnestly desiring o be clothed upon with our house which is
from heaven' (II Cor. 5:1, 2). This caused John to say, "Even
so, come, Lord Jesus" (Rev. 22:20). The grace of our Lord be
with us all.</cite> <br />


<h1>OF THE TRUE CHURCH OF GOD, ITS ORIGIN, PROGRESS, AND IMMOVABLE STABILITY, THROUGH ALL. TIMES</h1>
</div><div id="22"> 
<p>[As in the following work a survey is given, to some degree,
of the succession and establishment of the church, we find it
expedient in order that the same may not be misinterpreted, and
because some of our good friends have requested and besought us
(though we have intended to leave it as it was), to precede, by
way of introduction, that which follows, by our exposition of
the true and the false church, and of their respective good and
evil succession and progress; also, to state the views we hold
in regard to the right of succession. We will, therefore, begin
here, and, so as not to be tedious, endeavor to be as brief as
possible.]</p>

<p>As there are two different peoples, two different
congregations and churches, the one of God and from heaven, the
other of Satan and from the earth; so there is also a different
succession and progress belonging to each of them.*</p>

<p>We shall first speak of the divine and heavenly church, and
then of the last mentioned one.</p>

<p>The divine and heavenly church, which is the separated holy
flock and people of God, originated upon earth at the beginning
of the world; has existed through all the ages up to the
present time; and will continue to the end of the world.</p>

<h2>OF THE DIVINE SERVICE OF THE CHURCH</h2> 

<p>The state and divine service of this church have varied from
the beginning according to the different periods in which it
existed and flourished.</p>

<p>From Adam to Noah, from Noah to Abraham, from Abraham to
Moses, from Moses to Christ, from Christ to the end of the
world, God ordained, for each of these periods, different
customs, as regards the external divine service of this church;
also different signs, seals, and appurtenances; though it is,
was and shall be, the same church, the same people, and also
the same God whom they served, still serve, and shall serve
unto the end.</p>

<p>Before Adam fell, divine service had no respect to Christ;
He had not yet been presented to men as a means of salvation,
much less as their only Prophet, Priest, and King, or the only
true way, entrance and door to heaven, through whom alone men
can be saved; but their happiness depended on their obedience
to the command not to eat of the tree of the knowledge of good
and evil. Gen. 2:16, 17. **</p>

<br /><cite>* Not only the word of God, but also experience,
confirms the truth of our statement with reference to the two
different churches; since daily and universally we may observe
people who lead a very modest, devout and godfearing life; and,
on the other hand, such whose rife is extremely profligate,
impious and godless: thus it is also with the root of lite,
that is, with the matter of faith or of unbelief. How can these
be called or recognized by a different name than that of
members of the two above mentioned churches?</cite> 

<br /><cite>* The religion before the fall of Adam, with
which we begin, was of short duration; hence little is said of
it in the word of God. After the fall, divine service had
respect altogether, to Christ, Acts 4:12. Truly God promised
His Son to men, represented Him by types, and finally gave Him
to them. In the meantime, the fathers who were before the
advent of Christ, hoped in Him, longed for His coming, and
ordered and founded all their divine services, whatever these,
according to the time and the command of God, might be, on His
only and eternal reconciliation. Compare Gen. 3:15; 22:18;
49:10,18 with John 5:46; 8:56; I Peter 1:10, 11.</cite> 

<p>Touching the external mode of divine service, this was not
uniform at all periods, but varied very much; for it seems that
in the time from Adam to Noah, men followed the implanted light
of nature, or, to speak properly, the engraven law of the
conscience or the mind; observing no essential and express
ceremonial commandments, excepting Abel's offering, and the
commandment that the sons of God, that is, the members of His
church, should not marry the daughters of men, that is, those
who were not members of the church of God; which was enjoined
under a severe penalty. Compare Gen. 4:4 with Gen. 6:3.*</p>

<p>In the time from Noah to Abraham, there was added God's
command, not to eat blood, nor to shed human blood. At that
time God made a covenant with Noah and every living creature;
that He would destroy them no more by a flood; and He set the
bow in the clouds as a sign of the covenant. Compare Gen. 9:4,
5 with verses 11, 12, 13.</p>

<p>In the time from Abraham to Moses God instituted the
circumcision among His people; which served for the purpose of
distinguishing the descendants of Abraham, of whom the church
of God consisted, from all other nations, and as a seal of the
covenant which God had made with Abraham and his seed, in
particular. See Gen. 17:10, 11, 12; compare with Rom. 4:11.</p>

<p>From the time of Moses to Christ God gave, in addition to
circumcision, many laws and commandments, too numerous to
mention, which were to be observed by His people. These
consisted in manifold sacrifices, oblations, purifications,
etc., for the performances of which holy times were set apart,
as the passover, Pentecost, Feast of Tabernacles, new moons,
and fast days; together with sacred places, as the Tabernacle
of Moses, the Temple of Solomon; Shiloh, Mizpah, Moriah, etc.;
also holy persons, as prophets, priests, Levites, singers, and
doorkeepers. See Exodus, Leviticus, Numbers, and
Deuteronomy.</p>

<p>From the time of Christ to the end of the world, God,
through Christ, has taken away the ceremonies of the Mosaic law
as well as the signs by which it is scaled; and, to the
acknowledgment of the grace of Christ, commended the observance
of other ceremonies and signs, as baptism, supper, etc. These
external commandments, together with</p>

<br /><cite>* Abel's offering was by faith. Compare Gen. 4:4
with Heb. 11:4-The sons of God were commanded to render
obedience to the Spirit of God; which injunction they did not
heed in the days of Noah.</cite> 

</div><div id="23"> 

<p>faith, and true penitence of life, which is the spiritual
and moral virtue, the Lord has very strictly enjoined upon all
members of the church of Christ. See Matt. 28:18-20; Mark
16:15, 16, compared with I Cor. 11:2-28; also the entire
epistles of the apostles, which treat of the fulfillment of the
Mosaic ceremonial law, as Rom. 10:4; Gal. 4:10, 11 and 5:1-4;
.Col. 2:16.</p>

<p>Having now briefly shown the diversity of the external
divine service of the church of God, through all the times, it
behooves us to state, on the other hand, in what points this
church has always continued the same.</p>

<h2>IN WHAT POINTS THE CHURCH OF GOD HAS ALWAYS CONTINUED THE SAME</h2> 

<p>God has always ordained teachers in His church, and,
therefore, always caused His will to be proclaimed to the
people; which commenced principally in the days of Enos, the
grandson of Adam; for then began men to call upon the name of
the Lord. 4:26.</p>

<p>Enoch, the seventh from Adam, preached of the judgment and
the great day of vengeance of the Lord. Jude vv. 14, 15.</p>

<p>Abraham, the father of the faithful, preached of the name of
the everlasting God. Gen. 21:33.</p>

<p>Moses preached of the faithfulness, goodness, and
righteousness of God; so that his doctrine dropped as the rain,
and his speech distilled as the dew. Deut. 32:2-5.</p>

<p>David preached of the righteousness of God in the great
(God's) congregation, and would not let his mouth be stopped,
that is, he would not be overcome by his adversaries. Ps.
40:10.</p>

<p>Afterwards, all the holy prophets: Isaiah, Jeremiah,
Ezekiel, Daniel, Hosea, Joel, Amos, Obadiah, Jonah, Micah,
Nahum, Habakkuk, Zephaniah, Haggai, Zechariah, and Malachi,
preached of the laws, punishments and promises of God, and
prophesied of the blessed and felicitous coming of the Messiah
whom God had promised. Read the books containing their
prophecies, throughout.</p>

<p>After the time of the Prophets, Christ Himself preached of
the fulfillment of the time, the coming of the kingdom of
heaven, repentance, and faith in the Gospel. Mark 1:15.</p>

<p>The apostles followed the example and the command of their
Lord, in proclaiming the will of God; and not that alone, but
when their departure was nigh at hand, they appointed others in
their stead, as Timothy, Titus, the seven teachers in the seven
churches in Asia, who also, especially Timothy, were charged to
appoint faithful men, who would be able to teach others also.
II Tim. 2:2.</p>

<p>In order, moreover, that the church of Jesus Christ might
always know, according to what rule persons were to be chosen
for the ministry, the Holy Spirit, through the hand of Paul,
has written concerning this matter, and transmitted it to
posterity. I Tim. 3:1-7; Tit. 1:5-9.</p>

<p>Besides the office of preaching, which has always belonged
to the church, various other articles, in faith* and life as
well as in outward worship, which have always obtained, and
must still obtain, could be mentioned; however, since we think
we have pointed out the chief article, by virtue of which,
principally, a church is a church, and through what the same is
sustained, we will, so as not to bring too much of the same
thing, dismiss the subject here, and proceed to the stability,
durability, and visible discernibility of this church, as we
have promised in the beginning.</p>

<h2>OF THE STABILITY, DURABILITY, AND VISIBLE CHARACTERISTICS OF THE CHURCH OF GOD</h2> 

<p>That this church,.from the beginning to the time of David,
was always visible, discernible, and distinguished from other
nations, is clear and manifest, and, as far as we know, not
doubted by anybody. There remains, then, only to be proved,
that the same after the time of David, has- always been
discernible, according to the preceding manner, and will
continue to be so to the end.**</p>

<p>To show this, the song of David of the city or church of
God, Ps. 46:3, 4, serves an excellent purpose."Though the sea
rage and roll, so that through its tempest the mountains fall
in, Selah I the city of God shall nevertheless remain glad with
her fountains, where the holy tabernacles of the Almighty are."
This passage, beginning with the preceding verse reads as
follows according to the original text, "Therefore will not we
fear, though the earth be removed, and though the mountains be
carried into the midst of the sea; though the waters thereof
roar and be troubled, though the mountains shake with the
swelling thereof, Selah. There is a river, the streams whereof
shall make glad the city of God, the holy place of the
tabernacles of the Most High. God is in the midst of her; she
shall not be moved: God shall help her, and that right
early."***</p>

<p>Who is there so ill versed in the Word of God, as to suppose
that he is to understand by the words <i>city of</i> <i>God and
the holy place of the tabernacles of the Most High,</i> etc.,
the city of Jerusalem in the</p>

<br /><cite>* In the matter of faith all the pious, from the
beginning, looked to the Messiah; to whom also we, in these
last days, must look; for He is the foundation not only of the
apostles, but also of the prophets. Eph. 2:20.-Divine worship,
humility, righteousness, faithfulness, and many other virtues,
have been common in the ancient church as well as now in the
last church.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* The discernibility of the church of God before
the time of David, will, we think, not be disputed; and we
shall begin, therefore, from that period, leaving the time
previous to that untouched.</cite> 

<br /><cite>** The swelling sea and the tempests of which
David speaks here, must not be understood as having reference
to elemental water, or a disturbance of the natural, created
things; but to the onset of the evil practices and doctrines of
evil-minded and ungodly men, through the wiles of Satan, the
hellish adversary. The removing of the earth and the displacing
or falling in of the mountains through the aforesaid tempests
may be understood to refer to the ruin and destruction of the
earthly-minded and great of this world, who perish through the
noxious waters and commotions of evil doctrines. The streams
which make glad the city of God, can very properly be applied
as having reference to the saving doctrines through which the
city or church of God is refreshed, gladdened, and through the
divine promises contained in His word made to rejoice in the
Spirit.</cite> 

</div><div id="24"> 

<p>land of Palestine, and the Temple which was built in that
city? for this city and the Temple which was in it, were laid
waste and totally demolished and destroyed, first by the
Chaldeans, in the time of Jeremiah, and subsequently by the
Romans, who conquered the land of Canaan and Jerusalem; so
that, according to the prophecy, of Christ, not one stone was
left upon another. We must, therefore, understand this as
relating to the church of God, which is called, in holy
Scriptures, the city of.God. Heb. 12:22; for of the same it is
said that God is in the midst of her, and that, therefore, she
shall not be moved, etc., as shall appear more fully from the
following testimonies, Isaiah 2:2, "And it shall come to pass in
the last days, that the mountains* of the Lord's house shall be
established . . . and all nations shall flow unto it." It is
beyond dispute that here, by the words <i>the Lord's house,</i>
we are to understand the church of the Lord, unless there be
one who holds, with the Jews, that it must be understood as
having reference to the house of stone, which, in former time,
Solomon built, to the honor of God, on Mount Moriah; which
house is now in ruins; but was to be rebuilt. But this cannot
be expected, for the prophet Daniel, with respect to this
desolation, says clearly that it shall be poured upon the
desolate, even until the consummation (that is, the end of the
world): Dan. 9:27 compared with Matt. 24:15:</p>

<p>No small proof of this is furnished by the fact that about
forty years after the ascension of Christ, this very house was
, destroyed, demolished and burned by Titus Vespasian, and has
not yet been rebuilt, though about sixteen hundred years have
elapsed since; and, on account of the continual quarrels of the
Palestinean and other eastern rulers, it is, viewing it from a
human standpoint, not likely that it will ever be done.</p>

<p>Since it is true, then, that by the words"the house of the
Lord," we must understand- the church of the Lord, there
follows also what is said in connection with it namely: that
the same shall be firmly, i. e., invincibly, established on the
mountain, that is, Christ, the immovable foundation.</p>

<p>Besides the adduced prophecy, Isaiah 2:2, showing the
firmness and immovability of the house (or the church) of God,
which is founded upon the mountain of the Lord-Christ Jesus-the
same prophet treating of the durability, glory and divine
dignity of this church, under the type of the New Jerusalem,
produces various commendatory testimonies for .this purpose,
saying among other things, chap. 60, verse 11, "Thy gates shall
be open continually; they shall not be shut day not night.", " The mountain of which Isaiah says that the house of the
Lord is built upon, must necessarily be understood as referring
to Christ who in the language of the prophets is called a
mountain in holy Scripture. Dan. 2:35. On the other hand, the
house which Solomon built upon Mount Moriah has been destroyed,
and lain waste now for about 1600 years, without being rebuilt.
But Christ is such a foundation, that whatever is truly built
on it, cannot fall: for"Other foundation can no man lay than
that is laid, which is Jesus Christ" (I Cor 3:11). his is a
simile drawn from a peaceful city which has neither fear nor
care that enemies will attack her, and, therefore, leaves her
gates open by night as well as by day, for the accommodation of
the citizens, and the messengers and strangers who are
traveling in the night. Thus, he would say, will it also be
with the future church of Jesus Christ.</p>

<p>Then, in verse 14, speaking of the enemies of the church of
God, and of those who had slandered her, lie says: They"shall
bow themselves down at the soles of thy feet; and they shall
call thee, the city of the Lord, the Zion of the Holy One of
Israel."</p>

<p>When a city has become so great that even her deadly enemies
who had purposed to lay waste and destroy her, come bending
their knees, and, as begging for favor, bow down before her, as
is shown here of the enemies of the city and church of God;
there is no probability that such city will easily be
conquered, laid waste, or subjugated. So it is, in a spiritual
sense, with the city and church of Jesus Christ; for it is this
to which this prophecy has reference.</p>

<p>Immediately after, in the fifteenth verse, the prophet
declares that God will make this city or church an eternal
excellency, a joy of many generations.</p>

<p>And, as though by this the durability and excellency of this
city, well-beloved of God, were not yet sufficiently expressed,
he adds these words, verse 19, "But the Lord shall be unto thee
an everlasting light, and thy God thy glory."</p>

<p>And, lastly, verse 21, "Thy people, O God, also shall be all
righteousness: they shall inherit the land forever." Here no
further explanation is required, since the text plainly and
clearly expresses our meaning; and we will, therefore let it
suffice.</p>

<p>We then proceed to what Christ, the Son of God, Himself
testifies concerning this matter. Matt. 16:18, "Upon this rock I
will build my church; and the gates of hell shall not prevail
against it."</p>

<p>Christ, in another place, speaking by parable of a man who
built his house upon the sand, adds the explanation: that the
same was a foolish man; because such a foundation, and,
therefore, also the building which is founded upon it, cannot
stand before the floods, rains, and storms, which beat against
it.</p>

<p>On, the ,other hand, He commends him as wise and prudent,
who built his house upon a rock; since the same, being
well-founded, is able to withstand all dangers.</p>

<p>But the foundation of which the Lord speaks here, that He
will build His church upon it, is much firmer than any material
rock, for these must all pass away with time; but the
foundation which is Christ Himself, remains, shall remain, and
shall never decay: for"the foundation of God standeth sure" (II
Tim. 2:19).</p>

<p>Yet not only the foundation, but also the building of the
church shall not decay, though in nature</p>

</div><div id="25"> 

<p>it is otherwise; for a house, church, or tower, resting on
an immovable foundation, but being not sufficiently firm or
strong in itself, finally decays, yea falls to the ground; but
here it stands so that no opposing agencies, not even the devil
himself, can prevail against it, which is evident from these
words, "And the gates of hell shall not prevail against it."</p>

<p>In or under the gates councils were wont to be held; and the
gates were the strength and power of the cities. Compare Zech.
8:16 with Ps. 147:13. Hence, by the words,"The gates of hell,"
etc., we are to understand the council and power of the hellish
fiend. Yet, according to the last mentioned place of Scripture
these shall not prevail against the church of Christ;* and,
consequently, no other opposing agencies; for these are the
most powerful and worst enemies.</p>

<p>We pass on to other Scripture testimony written for the same
purpose. Matt. 28:20, "And, lo, I am with you all the days, even
unto the consummation of the ages." Nearly all translators, in
order to follow therein the Dutch way of speaking, render the
last words of this sentence, "unto the end of the world." But we
have, for good reasons, preserved the Greek mode of expression,
inasmuch as it serves better and more clearly to the end we
have in view. For we have found that, after the common
translation, the words,"unto the end of the world," have been
misinterpreted, and stretched beyond their meaning, by some
inexperienced persons, so that these expound that which has
been spoken of the consummation of time, as referring to the
end of locality; even as though Christ had not here promised
His apostles, to remain with them till all time should have
come to an end; but only until, for the promulgation of the
Gospel, they should have traveled unto the uttermost parts of
the earth. which, because it is not possible to travel farther
by land, are called the end of the world.</p>

<p>This is a great error, for; according to his explanation,
this promise would have belonged to the apostles alone, and
been limited by their lifetime, since they traveled everywhere
to preach, so that their sound went into all the earth, and
their words unto the ends of the world.** Compare Mark 16:20
with Rom. 10:18.</p>

<br /><cite>* If Christ is so firm a foundation that not
even the gates of hell can prevail against that which is built
upon it, how very foolish careless and imprudent are they who
forsake this foundation, and build upon, and trust in, the vain
things of this world! Certainly everything under the sun, yea,
all which our eyes behold, is vain and transitory."Vanity of
vanities, saith the preacher, all is vanity" (Eccl. 1:2),
understand: earthly things. But how much more vain are the
sinful and evil things which God has forbidden, and concerning
which He has warned us in His word, that we should have nothing
to do with them! How great will be the fall of those who build
upon these forbidden vanities! If we suffer damage, and
complain, when a material house or building falls, because its
foundation is not firm, how much greater loss will they
sustain, and what greater reason will they have to lament, who
will fall both in soul and body, without ever being able to
rise again!</cite> 

<br /><cite>* The words of David, Psa. 19:6, which he spoke
of the circuit of the sun around the whole earth every
twenty-four hours, the apostle Paul applies to the traveling
and preaching of the apostles through the whole world saying,
Rom . 10:18, "Verily their sound went into all the earth, and
their words unto the ends of the world." Since the apostles, in
their time, traveled through the whole world, to preach the
Gospel, and consequently, have been at the ends or uttermost
limits of the earth, it would follow, according to our
opponents' own words, that the promise of Christ,"Lo, I am with
you" (or by you), etc., was completely fulfilled in the
apostles, excluding their descendants from assuming any part of
it whatever. This would certainly be a comfortless matter for
us, their descendants; but the case is quite a different one as
is shown in this column. But, in order that all true followers
of Christ and His apostles, to the end of time, might comfort
themselves with this promise, the Lord has expressly spoken of
the consummation of the ages, and declared that so long
(understand: spiritually) He will be with them.</cite> 

<p>We arrive now at the point we had in view from the
beginning, and which we shall now present more plainly and
fully. It is certain that the Lord has spoken here of the
preaching of the holy Gospel, of faith, of baptism, and of the
manner of establishing and building up His church, as it was
His will that the same should be built up and maintained
through all ages. After saying this, He gave the before
mentioned promise.</p>

<p>It is settled, therefore, that the visible church of Jesus
Christ (for this is the one in whom the preaching of the holy
Gospel, faith, baptism, and whatever there is more besides,
have place) shall exist through all time, even unto the
consummation of the ages; for, otherwise, the promise."Lo, I am
with you all the days," etc., can not be fulfilled in her.</p>

<p>Even as, besides preaching and faith, baptism shall continue
in the church to the end of time, so also the holy supper. This
appears from the words of Paul, I Cor. 11:2'6, "For as often as
ye eat this bread, and drink this cup, ye do shew forth the
Lord's death till he come."</p>

<p>Thus, if mention is made here of the eating of the bread,
the drinking of the cup, and the showing forth of the Lord's
death, with the additional clause that this shall be observed,
and continue, till the Lord come (that is, the end of time, to
judge the world), it follows that there will be, throughout all
ages to the end of the world, a church which will observe the
external ordinances of Christ not only in respect to holy
baptism, but also to the holy supper, and the shewing forth of
the Lord's death; unless it can be shown that the words,"till
he come," have another signification, such as we have never yet
met with in any commentator, since the text is not only too
clear, but also too conclusive.* Compare this with Matt. 25:31;
John 14:3; Acts 1:11; I Thess. 4:16; Jude 14; Rev. 1:7; 22:12,
20.</p>

<h2>THE CHURCH OF GOD OBSCURED AND RENDERED ALMOST INVISIBLE IN SOME PLACES; AND WHAT HAS BEEN THE CAUSE OF IT FROM ANCIENT TIMES</h2> 

<p>As the moon, notwithstanding her substance and body never
perish, is not always seen in her full</p>

<br /><cite>* Whenever, in the New Testament, the coming of
Christ is spoken of, there is generally, yea, universally,
meant by it His last coming to judgment."Then . . . they shall
see the Son of man coming in the clouds of heaven with power
and great glory" (Matt. 24:30). 'Behold, he cometh with clouds;
and every eye shall see him, and they also which pierced him. '
Rev. 1:7; also I Cor. 11:26.</cite> 

</div><div id="26"> 

<p>light by the human eye, either, because she sinks beneath
the horizon, or, being too close to the sun, is obscured by
him, or, being far from the sun, is darkened by the shadow of
the earth, which is called an eclipse; even so it is with the
substance and appearance of the church of God on earth. The
latter, though never perishing entirely, does not always show
herself in her full form, yea, at times she seems to have
vanished altogether, yet not in all, but only in some places,
either through the slothfulness of some people, who, from want
of regard, or for some other reason, neglect the external,
manifest commandments of God, or on account of some
misconceptions or errors that have arisen, and whereby
sometimes many of the true believers have been perverted, and
seduced from the true worship of God; or in consequence of
persecution, violence and tyranny, exercised against the faith
and the practice of it, on account of which the pious are
compelled to hide and, as outcasts from mankind, seclude
themselves in forests, wildernesses, and solitary places; so
that its characteristics, light and virtue could not be seen,
much less known, by the common world.</p>

<p>When the church of God of the Old Testament was in Egypt, it
could not observe its divine worship, but had to request
permission"to go three days' journey into the wilderness, and
sacrifice to the Lord." Ex. 8:26, 27, compared with Ex.
10:26.</p>

<p>During the forty years that this same people was in the
wilderness, such remarkable events happened that all their
children remained uncircumcised, not receiving circumcision
until they had become old, and arrived in the land of Canaan,
at mount Aralot. Josh. 5:2-8.</p>

<p>In the time of Elijah this church was so greatly obscured on
account of persecution, that he thought that he alone was left,
though God had reserved to Himself seven thousand persons who
served Him, and had not bowed their knees to Baal. I Kings
19:14, 18; Rom. 11:3, 4.</p>

<p>When this people had been carried away into Babylon, the
house of God, at Jerusalem, where divine worship was wont to be
made, lay waste, and the stones of the sanctuary were scattered
in all the streets; yea, among the people in Babylon, matters
were in so bad a condition, in regard to religion and the songs
of praise with which they were wont to worship God, that they
had hung their harps on the willows that were planted there by
the rivers, Ps. 137:1-4; for which reason they were numbered
among the dead and among those that go down to the grave. Bar.
3:10-14.</p>

<p>After the Babylonian captivity, in the time of the
Maccabees, many of the church of Israel, because of the
existing danger, hid themselves in caves, in order that they
might keep the Sabbath. II Macc. 6:11.</p>

<p>All these obscurations, like sad eclipses in the divine
worship, have happened in the church of God of the Old
Testament, before the birth and advent of Christ into this
world; and much more might be said in regard to this, if it
were necessary, but we consider it sufficient to have made
simple mention of it from time to time.</p>

<p>The same took place also after the advent of Christ in the
church under the Gospel, which was composed of Jews and
Gentiles; she too, could not always raise her head with safety,
but was ofttimes, like the sun behind clouds, concealed from
the common sight of men.</p>

<p>Even in the time when Christ dwelt bodily among men, and had
risen from the dead, His disciples, the chief members of His
church, sat concealed, with closed doors, for fear of the Jews.
John 20:19.</p>

<p>After the ascension of Christ, the very numerous church
which was at Jerusalem, dispersed, on account of persecution,
through the land of Judea and Samaria, except the apostles; so
that this distinguished church, which, it appears, was the
chief one on the face of the earth, had to sojourn secretly in
a strange land. Acts 8:1.</p>

<p>Afterwards, when the emperor Domitian had banished John, the
holy apostle and evangelist, for the Gospel's sake, to the
island of Patmos, the Holy Ghost revealed unto him the future
state of the church of Christ, namely, that she would have to
flee into the wilderness, on account of the persecution of
Antichrist, and there be fed by God, a thousand two hundred and
threescore days, which, reckoned according to prophetic
language, means as many years. Rev. 12:6-11.</p>

<p>Whether we begin to reckon these years from the death of the
apostles; or with the year 300, when the so-called patriarchs
had their origin; or with the year 600; or a little later, when
Mohammed rose in the east among the Greeks, and the pope in the
west among the Latins, and raised no small persecution against
the defenseless and innocent little flock of the church of
Christ, so that all who did not wish to be devoured, either in
soul or in body, had to hide themselves in deserts and
wildernesses; let it be reckoned as it may, say we, a very long
period is to be understood by it, which has extended to this,
or about this time.</p>

<p>Here the rose has blossomed very gloriously among the
thorns. Song of Sol. 2:2. Here the dove that was in the clefts
of the rock and in the secret places of the stairs, let her
sweet voice be beard.* Verse 14. Here the Lord said, "A garden
enclosed is my sister, my spouse; a spring shut up, a fountain
sealed" (Song of Sol. 4:12). Here the Son of God has fed,
sustained and preserved His church against the sentence of
worldly and carnalminded men, who, because they are carnal,
cannot comprehend the things of the Spirit of God.</p>

<p>But lest any should misconstrue our preceding proposition,
let it be understood, that when we speak of the obscuration,
concealment, or the be-</p>

<br /><cite>* In the clefts of the rock and in the secret
places of the stairs, that is, In persecutions and in solitary
and strange regions; just as"among the thorns" signifies, in
the power of evil-minded and bloodthirsty tyrants.</cite> 

</div><div id="27"> 

<p>coming invisible, of the church of God, we do not mean the
church in general, or in all places, for the church in general
has never been obscured and hidden in all places at the same
time; but we mean thereby some parts of the church in general,
namely, some particular societies, belonging to the body of the
general church which is spread over the whole earth.</p>

<p>It must be stated, also, that by the term, general church,
we do not understand all the churches which bear the Christian
name; but only those who express the Christian name by their
upright faith and pure observance of the Christian and
Evangelical commandments.</p>

<p>Now the question arises, whether our church of the present
day, called the Anabaptists, has truly descended, and derived
her succession, from the aforementioned church of God which has
existed from the beginning, and kept the commandments of God in
purity.</p>

<p>But, in order to do this briefly and in the best manner, we
shall leave untouched the time and conditions of the church
from Adam to Christ, as being an undisputed point; and only
examine the time and condition of the church after the advent
of Christ; for the point of difference relates solely to those
who and which, by virtue of true succession, have a right to
the same.</p>

<h2>THE SUCCESSION OF THE CHURCH OF GOD, PER SONAL SUCCESSION, AND SUCCESSION OF DOCTRINE</h2> 

<p>From the Latin word <i>succedo,.</i> that is, to go under,
or to take the place of one, is derived the word, succession,
which we, though improperly, have mixed into our Dutch
language. The various branches proceeding from this root, that
is, the numerous words taking their origin from it, together
with their significations, we leave untouched; in general we
understand by it, to follow any one in his place, right, or
reign.</p>

<p>There is a twofold succession, natural and spiritual,
political and ecclesiastical, or civil and ecclesiastical; but
we have to speak here only of the spiritual and ecclesiastical,
and not of the natural, political, or civil, succession; for
only the former, and, by no means, the latter, belongs
here.*</p>

<p>Now, as succession is of twofold nature and kind, so also is
each kind of the same twofold and distinct in itself. This will
be shown plainly in the spiritual and ecclesiastical
succession.</p>

<p>In order to present this in a clear light, we say that the
ecclesiastical succession may be considered in two ways:
firstly, with respect to the, succession of persons; secondly,
with respect to the succession of doctrine.</p>

<br /><cite>* There is not only a natural and spiritual
succession, which could be considered as indifferent only; but
both, the natural and the spiritual, can be good or bad, form
both we find either the one or the other. But we purpose to
speak here only of a spiritual succession, and moreover, of
such an one that is good. This we shall consider with regard o
good persons as well as to good doctrine. he latter is a sign
and evidence of the former, so that the former cannot subsist
without the latter. Where the latter is, the former need not be
looked for so carefully. But where both are found in truth and
verity, it is not to be doubted that there is also the true and
genuine church of God, in which God will dwell and walk; which
has the promise of an eternal and blissful life; and about
which the holy Scriptures glory and teach so much.</cite> 

<h2>PERSONAL SUCCESSION</h2> 

<p>As a great building, house, or castle, can be considered,
firstly, with regard to it as a whole, and, secondly, with
respect to its different parts, so also the whole church of
Christ can properly be considered: firstly, in the whole or in
general, as comprising all the congregations in the whole
world, which have in common the most holy faith, and the
practice, which, according to God's holy Word, must follow
therefrom; secondly, in any particular part of the same, as,
this or that church which is in accord with it, as for
instance, the church at Amsterdam, Harlem, Dort, etc.</p>

<p>Likewise there is also (or, certainly can be) a twofold
personal succession: (1) a general, (2) a particular one. By
the general is understood that succession, which has been, in
general, throughout the whole world, through a succession of
true teachers, whether few or many, according to the
opportunity of the times; who have rightly taught the truth,
and propagated it according to their ability; concerning which
(touching their doctrine, especially in regard to holy baptism,
etc.) we have shown, which the true succession is, which,
together with the observance of all the other commandments of
Jesus Christ, is recognized by us, according to the promise of
the Lord given to the true teachers, Matt. 28:20.</p>

<p>By the particular succession is understood the succession of
teachers, from person to person; in a particular church, at a
separate place, and sitting on a throne prepared for this
purpose, as for instance, at Constantinople, of which the
Greeks boast; but principally at Rome, about which the Latins,
that is, the papists, make a great ado. But concerning this
there is no promise, law, or commandment to be found in the
whole Gospel, and we, therefore, pass on.*</p>

<h2>SUCCESSION OF DOCTRINE</h2> 

<p>Here the words of Tertullian are applicable. He says, "The
Christian church is called apostolic not just because of the
succession of persons, but on</p>

<br /><cite>* The twelve tribes of Israel, considered as a
whole, were but one church; but with respect to certain parts
who had remained on the other side of the Jordan namely, Reuben
Gad, and the half tribe of Manasseh (Jos . 22:1-5); the tribes
of Judah and Benjamin who dwelt in Jerusalem, and formed also a
part; and the residue of the multitude of Israel, who dwelt by
the cities of Samaria, it could very properly be said, that
Israel consisted of three churches: (1) on the other side of
Jordan; (2) at Jerusalem; (3) in Samaria, etc. Even so there is
but one church, which, keeping the true faith, is scattered
over many places; but with respect to the multiplicity of
places where they dwell, they may be called many churches."</cite> 

</div><div id="28"> 

<p>account of the kinship of doctrine, since she holds the
doctrine of the apostles." <i>Lib. de</i> praescript, etc.</p>

<p>This doctrine everyone who boasts* of the true succession,
must prove from the true apostolic writings, as the means by
which the church was originally instituted, subsequently
established, and maintained through all times (we speak of the
Christian and evangelical church). Therefore, this doctrine
must necessarily, also in these last times be the mark of the
true succession.</p>

<p>Now, if this is united with the common succession of
teachers, we have everything that is necessary for the
demonstration of the true church. This stands so fast that it
cannot reasonably be disputed, much less, refuted.</p>

<p>The question now will be, in what church the true apostolic
doctrine has been held from the beginning, and is still held;
which is a privilege boasted of by many. We leave it to them,
and content ourselves with the testimony of our conscience,
compared with the holy Gospel of Christ and the faith of the
holy church, of which mention is made, throughout, in the
ancient church histories.</p>

<p>To give evidence, then, of the faith professed by us, we
declare, that we believe in our heart, and confess with our
mouth:</p>

<h2>THE APOSTLES' CREED</h2> 

<p>1. I believe in one God, the Father, the almighty Creator of
heaven and earth.</p>

<p>2. And in Jesus Christ, His only-begotten Son, our Lord.</p>

<p>3. Who was conceived by the Holy Ghost, and born of the
virgin Mary.</p>

<p>4. Who suffered under Pontius Pilate, was crucified, died,
and was buried.</p>

<p>5. Rose from the dead on the third day.</p>

<p>6. Ascended into heaven, and sitteth at the right hand of
God, the almighty Father.</p>

<p>7. From whence He will come to judge the living and the
dead.</p>

<p>8. I believe in the Holy Ghost.</p>

<p>9. I believe in a holy general Christian church, the
communion of saints.</p>

<p>10. Forgiveness of sins.</p>

<p>11. Resurrection of the flesh.</p>

<p>12. And an eternal life.</p>

<p class="c8">This is the most ancient and simple creed, which,
it appears, was confessed already in or about the time of the
apostles; and for which many, yea the greater part of the first
Christian believers, have sacrificed their lives. But as, in
the course of time, the true and simple meaning of the
confession set</p>

<br /><cite>*"Let no man glory in men," says Paul, I Cor.
3:21. We may not glory, therefore, in the succession of eminent
persons, if they do not derive their eminence from the eminence
and truth of the word of God. The prophet Jeremiah, going
further yet in this point, has cursed that man who trusts in
man, and maketh flesh his arm. Jer. 17:5. forth was assailed
and disputed by the contradiction and perverse interpretation
of contentious and, not less, erring persons going under the
name of good Christians; the true believers of the church of
God were compelled, as often as this happened, and necessity
required, to declare how they understood and interpreted this
or that article.</cite> 

<p>Hence it has come that at this day there are found among
those who are called Anabaptists, various confessions, which
differ in style, but not in faith, (we speak of the foundation
of the same), in which confessions the creed set forth above is
more fully interpreted and explained.</p>

<p>Of these we shall present here principally three, which were
acknowledged and adopted without contradiction as a unanimous
confession, by a great number of teachers, assembled from
various distrkts, in the year 1649, in the city of Harlem. Two
of these had been drawn up at Amsterdam, in 1627 and 1630, and
the third at Dort, the 21st of April 1632; all on account of
certain church unions which took place subsequently in these
years.</p>
<hr />

<br />

   <h1>FIRST CONFESSION</h1>

<p>Drawn up at Amsterdam, the 27th of September, 1627, called
<i>Scriptural Instruction,</i> concerning who the people are,
on whom the peace of God rests, and how they are bound to peace
and unity; given in answer to the following several questions,
of which the first is</p>

<p class="c8">What are the fundamental and unmistakable marks
by which the children of God and members of Jesus Christ (being
the church of God) can and must be known, according to the
testimony of the word of the Lord?</p>

<p>In order to answer this question correctly, we must consider
what the means are, by which men become children of God,
members of Jesus Christ, and the church of God. For although
the blessed Lord Jesus Christ is the only meritorious cause of
the justification of man, their adoption by God as His
children, and the foundation of their eternal salvation (Rom.
3:24,25; I Cor. 1:30; Tit. 3:7; Heb. 5:12; Eph. 1:5; Col. 3:11;
Acts 4:12); God, the heavenly Father, of whom all things are, I
Cor. 8:6; and who is the true Father of the whole family in
heaven and earth, Eph. 3:14, 15, has nevertheless been pleased
to impute the merits of His Son Jesus Christ to man, and make
him partaker of the same, through the means of faith in His
beloved, only, and only-begotten Son (Rom. 3:25; Gal. 2:16;
Eph. 2:8; John 3:15, 36; 6:40); whereby He owns them as
children, and adopts them as heirs of everlasting life,
according to the testimony of John, who says, "He" (that is,
Christ)"came unto his own, and his own received him not. But as
many as received him, to them gave he power to become the sons
of God, even to them that believe on his name: which were born,
not of blood, nor of the will of the flesh, nor of the will of
man, but of God" (John 1:11-13). Paul</p>

</div><div id="29"> 

<p>confirms this with these words, "Ye are all the children of
God by faith in Christ Jesus" (Gal. 3:26). Through this
means-faith-apprehended from the Word of God, and confirmed by
the Holy Spirit, men are born of God; hence, the appellation,
children of God, truly belongs to- them, since they have God
for their father, and Christ for their brother. God the Father
acknowledges them as His sons and daughters; and Christ, for
this reason, is not ashamed to call them His brethren. (Rom.
10:17; I I Cor. 4:13; Rom. 8:16; John 1:12; I John 5 ,1; James
2:18; I Pet. 1:23; Matt. 5:45; John 1:12, 13; 3:2; 20:17; Rom.
8:15; Gal. 4:16; Matt. 12:50; II Cor. 6:18; Heb. 2:11, 12).
These children of God and brethren of Jesus Christ, are heirs
of God, yea, joint heirs in the inheritance of their brother
Jesus Christ, as has been promised to them by God the Father,
through the means of faith, all the acquired benefits of our
Saviour Jesus Christ, which are, chiefly, forgiveness of sins,
justification, and peace with God; and, because they are
children of the resurrection, they shall not come into
condemnation, but are passed from death unto life; they shall
enjoy salvation, eternal life, and unspeakable happiness, yea,
possess all things that the Lord Christ possesses. Rom. 8:17;
Eph. 1:11; John 7:3; Acts 10:43; Rom. 3:26; 4:5; 5:1; Gal.
2:16; Luke 20:26; John 5:24; Matt. 16:16, 17; Mark 16:16; Rom.
10:9; I Pet. 1:9; John 3:16; 6:47; 17:3; 20:31; I John 5:11; I
Pet. 1:8; Luke 22; Rev. 21:7.</p>

<p>Hence, we reply, in conclusion to the question presented:
That the fundamental, certain mark of the children of God and
members of Jesus Christ, is that by virtue of which this
appellation belongs to them in truth according to the promise
of God, namely, <i>the only saving faith which worketh by
love;</i> upon which God Himself looks with gracious eyes, and
which alone avails before Him (Gal. 5:6; Jer. 5:3; Hos. 2:2;
Jer. 5:1; Acts 8:37; 15:11; Isa. 26:2) wherefore we, being one
or unanimous with God, must have respect to it alone, seeing
that the Lord Christ Himself, promising Peter salvation upon
his faith and confession, adds"Thou art Peter, and upon this
rock I will build my church; and the gates of hell shall not
prevail against it" (Matt. 16:18).</p>

<p>We shall now briefly show, what faith in Christ is, what is
to be believed, what its design is, and what are the internal
and external operations of faith.</p>

<p>This faith in Christ, by which men become partakers of all
the acquired benefits of Jesus. Christ, is neither an uncertain
opinion nor merely a bare confession of the mouth, but a firm
and sure confidence of the heart, which doubts not the things
promised by God in Christ; but has a firm assurance that He who
has promised them is able also to perform them. Heb. 11:13;
3:6; Rom. 10:10; 4:20, 21. By this firm and sure confidence the
believer in the promises of God is established in Jesus Christ
his Saviour, because he knows that all the promises of God are
yea and amen in Him; on which he lays firm hold, as on an
anchor of his soul, both sure and steadfast. Acts 10:43; I Pet.
1:10, 11; John 8:56; Heb. 11:26; II Cor. 1:20; Heb. 6:18, 19.
He believes with his heart that God,-for the fulfilling of His
gracious promises, willing to show His great love toward
mankind who, through sin, had fallen into death and manifold
corruptions, by redeeming them,-sent into this world for this
purpose, when the time of all prophecies was fulfilled, His
only, dear and beloved Son, who from eternity was with His
Father in great glory and beloved by Him before the foundation
of the world, possessing great riches and being equal with God
His Father, by whom all things were made, and without whom not
anything was made of all that was made in heaven or upon earth,
and in whom they all stand, since He upholds all things by the
word of His power. Gen. 22:18; Deut. 8:15; Isa. 7:15; 9:6;
11:1; 40:9; Micah 5:2; John 3:16; Rom. 5:8; 9:31; I John 4:9,
10; Gen. 3:19; Wisd. 2:24; IV Esd. 7:48; Rom. 4:5, 12; I Cor.
15:21; Rom. 5:16; IV Esd. 3:7; Gen. 3:17; Rom. 1:2; 8:3; Col.
1:13; Eph. 1:7; Gal. 4:4; Mark 12:6; 1:11; Matt. 17:5; 3:17;
Heb. 1:8; 7:3; 13:8; 1;3; John 16:28; 17:5, 24; I I Cor. 8:9;
Phil. 2:6; Rev. 1:18.</p>

<p>He left His divine glory, form, and riches, went out from
God, His Father, and came down from heaven into this world, so
that He was conceived by a virgin, and she brought forth this
Son at Bethlehem, where God brings His first-born Son into the
world in the likeness of sinful flesh. John 13:3; 3:13, 31;
6:38, 51, 62; Eph. 4:9, 10; Isa. 7:14; Matt. 1:23; Luke 2:21;
Isa. 9:6; Luke 3:6; Gal. 4:4; Micah 5:2; Matt. 2:6; Heb. 1:6;
Rom. 8:3. For the Word became flesh; that which was from the
beginning, which the apostles say, which they heard with their
ears, and which their hands handled, of the Word of life; for
the life was manifested, so that there was seen that eternal
life, which was with the Father. John 1:14; I John 1:1, 2; John
1:9; 20:25, 27; Isa. 40:5, 9. Therefore, all true believers
must show and ascribe to their Saviour, not as to a creature,
but as to the Creator, all divine honor, even as they do unto
the Father. John 5:23; 3:30, 31; 20:28. For, although, for a
little while, He was made lower than the angels, yet all the
angels of God must worship Him. Phil. 2:10; Matt. 14:33; Heb.
1:6; for He is worthy of this who bath so loved us that He
purchased us with His death, and washed us from our sins in His
own blood; who died for our sins and rose for our
justification; who destroyed the power of the devil, bell, and
death; who abolished the sinful handwriting of the law, and has
forgiven all sins, reconciling to God the Father all things
that are in heaven and earth, in that He made peace through the
blood of His cross; who brought</p>

</div><div id="30"> 

<p>life and immortality to light, and unto whom we are
appointed by God, to inherit eternal salvation. Rev. 5:9; 1:5;
Rom. 5:10; Acts 20:28; Col. 1:14; I Pet. 1:19; Rom. 4:25; 5:6,
8; Col. 2:13, 14, 19, 20; Heb. 2:14; I Cor. 15:54, 55; Rev.
20:14; Isa. 25:8; II Tim. 1:10; Eph. 1:10; 2:13; 1 Thess.
5:9.</p>

<p>Thus the Lord Jesus Christ, the Son of the living God, is
the true cornerstone, the way and door to eternal life, and
there is no other name given unto man, either in heaven or on
earth, whereby he can be saved, and become a child or heir of
God, than the name of our Lord Jesus Christ. Isa. 28: 16; Rom.
9:33; Eph. 2:20; I Pet. 2:6; John 14: 6; 10:9; Acts 4:12.</p>

<p>The believer, seeing, by faith, that God in His weightiest
and unspeakably great promises is not mutable, but does, in
truth, fulfill them through the giving of His only, dear, and
beloved Son, feels assured by this, that there is nothing with
God, which He shall not also give us with His Son. He,
therefore, has firm confidence, that the benefits which God has
promised in and through the suffering, death, shed blood,
resurrection and ascension of His Son, belong to the believer,
and that he shall in truth receive them. Heb. 6:17, 18; Ps.
33:4; John 3:16; I John 4:9; Eph. 1:6; Col. 1: 12-14; II Tim.
4:8; Eph. 1:11-13; Rom. 8:32, 34: 38; II Pet. 1:3; Gal. 2:21;
Eph. 2:17; II Cor. 4:6, 7.</p>

<p>This faith begets in the heart of the believer an inward
taste of the kindness of God, and of the powers of the world to
come; which is followed by gladness, joy, and a firm security
of the Father's favor in the soul, whereby, in every time of
need, he is enabled to say, confident that he will be
heard,"Abba, Father;" and doubts not, though the thing promised
be not apparent to human eyes, nay, seem contrary to nature,
and transcends the comprehension, understanding and capability
of man (Ps. 34:8; I Pet. 2:3; Eph. 2:7; Heb. 6:5, 19; I I Cor.
4:17; Rom. 12:12; 14:17; I I Cor. 6:10; John 8:56; Rev. 19:7;
Rom. 8:31, 38; Ps. 32':1; Pet. 5:7; Ps. 55:22; Rom. 8:15; Gal.
4:6; Rom. 4:20; James 1:6; Heb. 11:1; Rom. 4:18, 19; Heb.
11:11; Heb. 11:29), for the believer, by faith, looks not only
at the things which, through the creation and government of
God, exist in nature (which man may comprehend and understand)
but to the goodness and omnipotence of the Promiser, unto whom
nature and all creatural power in heaven, earth and sea, nay,
death itself, must bow. Upon this ground the believer stands
fast, even when, with Abraham, the father of the faithful, and
with many of the pious, he is tried of God by things seemingly
contradictory; for he is assured that God cannot lie. Ps. 52:9;
Rom. 4:21.; Heb. 11:19; Ps. 135:5; Isa. 40:26; IV Esd. 3:21;
23; Josh. 10:13; Hab. 3:10, 11; Matt. 27:44; Isa. 40:12; Rev.
20:11; Prov. 8:29; Jer. 5:22; Ex. 14:22; Heb. 11:10; 35; II
Cor. 1:10; Gen. 22:1; I Pet. 1:7.</p>

<p>But this faith of the heart is known the very best unto God,
who also, being the only discerner of the intents and thoughts
of the heart, will judge the internal signs of the faith of the
heart, according as He finds it to be upright or dissembling.
Jer. 17:10; Acts 1:24; Rev. 2:23; Heb. 4:12. But to man, who
has no other way of judging this faith of the heart, than by
the fruits of the same, which he hears and sees, there are
given as signs by which to distinguish it, the confession of it
with the mouth, and the obedience of faith as manifested in
outward works. Therefore the believer, according to the command
of Christ, must confess openly before men, to the honor of his
Creator and Redeemer, what he believes and experiences in his
heart, no matter, what sufferings may result to him on that
account. He can not do otherwise, for he must hearken unto God
more than unto men (Mark 16:16; John 3:26; I Cor. 2:11; John
3:11; Rom. 10:10; 1:5, 16, 25; Acts 4:19, 20)-; for the Lord
Christ hath said, "Whosoever therefore shall confess me before
men, him will I confess also before my Father which is in
heaven." Matt. 10:32; Luke 9:26. John says, "Every spirit that
confesseth that Jesus Christ is come in the flesh is of God" (I
John 4:2), and Paul explains, "We having the same spirit of
faith, according as it is written, I believed, and therefore
have I spoken;* we also believe, and therefore speak" (II Cor.
4:13) .</p>

<p>That, therefore, oral confession proceeding from sincere
faith conduces to salvation, Paul testifies with these
words, "If thou shalt confess with try mouth the Lord Jesus, and
shalt believe in thine heart that God hath raised him from the
dead, thou shalt be saved. For with the heart man believeth
unto righteousness; and with the mouth confession is made unto
salvation" (Rom. 10:9, 10-).</p>

<p>This faith exhibits also its outward fruits of love worthy
of the faith; wherefore the believer, according to the teaching
of the apostle Peter, must give all diligence to show forth
from his faith, virtue, knowledge, temperance, patience,
godliness, brotherly love, and charity; and walk in the Spirit,
whose fruits, as love, joy, peace, long suffering, gentleness,
goodness, faith, meekness, temperance are seen on them
outwardly. II Pet. 1:5-7; Gal. 5:16, 22, 23; 6:1; Eph. 5:9. By
these good fruits, and by brotherly love, as external signs of
the true life, they are known as good trees, the salt of the
earth, the light of the world, a light which is put on a
candlestick, to give light unto all that are in the house, a
city set on a hill which cannot be hid. And thus they let their
good works so shine before men, that they, seeing them, may
glorify God, the heavenly Father. Matt. 7:17, 20; 12:35;
5:13-16.</p>

<br /><cite>* These words of Paul,"I believed, and therefore
have I spoken," are taken from the 116th Psalm of David.</cite> 

</div><div id="31"> 

<p>For, as children who in their appearance and department show
forth their father's form and qualities, are thereby judged and
known to be the children of such parent, even so the believers,
having, through the new birth, become partakers of the divine
nature (inasmuch as they pattern after God in virtues), are
thereby judged or known to be His children; and, in order that
they might well express this image, they are abundantly
admonished by Christ and His apostles in regard to it. . So,
for instance, with these words, "Be ye therefore perfect, even
as your Father which is in heaven is perfect.""But as he which
hath called you is holy, so be ye holy in all manner of
conversation.""And every man . . . purifieth himself, even as
he is pure.""Be ye therefore merciful, as your Father also is
merciful." Forgive one another, as God hath forgiven you. II
Pet. 1:4; I Pet. 1:23; John 3:6; I John 4:7; 5:1; James 1:18;
John 1:13; Rom. 8:16; Matt. 5:48; I Pet. 1:15; I John 3:3; Luke
6:36; Eph. 4:2; Cal. 3:13.</p>

<p>Again"Blessed are the peacemakers: for they shall be called
the children of God" (Matt. 5:9). The Lord says further, "Love
your enemies, bless them that curse you, do good to them that
hate you, and pray for them which despitefully use you, and
persecute you; that ye (show that ye) are the children of your
Father which is in heaven: for he maketh his sun to rise on the
evil and on the good, and sendeth rain on the just and on the
unjust." Wherever, then, such similarity with God appears,
through the putting on of the new man, which after God is
created in righteousness and true holiness, these show forth
the image of Christ in their mortal flesh. Eph. 4:24; Col.
3:10; Gal. 2:20; II Cor. 5:17. They are an epistle of Christ,
in which Christ can be seen, and read by all men; and they are
justly called Christians; and, consequently, are true children
of God, and members of Jesus Christ: therefore they must be
recognized and accepted by all those who truly fear God, as
belonging to one body, which is the church of the living Gad;
and as having through this fruitful faith, fellowship with God
the righteous judge, with Jesus the mediator of the new
covenant, with the church of the firstborn, which are written
in heaven, with an innumerable company of angels, and with all
the spirits of just men made perfect. II Cor. 3:2; Acts 11:26;
Rom. 12:5; Eph. 4:4, 16; I Cor. 12:13; Acts 20:28; I Tim. 3:15.
Of this church Christ is the foundation, Head, King, Shepherd,
Leader, Master and Lord. I Cor. 3:11; Eph. 4:15; Jer. 33:15;
Luke 1:33; John 10:11, 14; 13:14. She alone is His body,
adorned bride, dove, flock, and people, spiritual flesh of His
flesh, and bone of His bones. Rom. 12:5; Rev. 21:2; Song of
Sol. 2:14; 4:1.</p>

<p>Now, although this fruitful faith is the only certain
fundamental mark by which the children of God and members of
Jesus Christ shall be known, and through which alone they are
also, by grace, made partakers of the (by us unmerited)
benefits of Christ, God has notwithstanding been pleased to set
forth and confirm to believers, by external, visible signs, the
benefits and merits of His Son Jesus Christ, which, as has been
said, are received only by faith, and retained by obedience, in
order that the things signified (of the promises of the grace
of God), might shine forth the more clearly by the external
signs, partly to assure the consciences of the believers, in
the new covenant of the grace of God, and partly to bind the
members of Jesus Christ together in unity, as members belonging
to one body. For this purpose He has instituted in the church
of the New Testament especially two such ordinances or signs
suited to the thing signified, in which all true believers find
great benefit and comfort. These are the Holy Baptism, and the
Holy Supper. Eph. 2:7; John 1:16; Mark 16:16; Luke 22:19; Acts
2:38;1 Cor. 11:24; Jer. 31:31; I Pet. 3:21; I Cor. 12:13;
10:17; Rom. 6:5; Matt. 28:19, 26.</p>

<h2>OF HOLY BAPTISM</h2> 

<p>Holy baptism is an external, visible ordinance, the rite of
which consists in this: That all those who hear, believe, and
receive gladly with a penitent heart, the doctrine of the holy
Gospel, are baptized, for a holy purpose, with water, in the
name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost,
according to the institution of Christ, and the usage of His
apostles. Acts 2:41; Matt. 3:11; Acts 1:35-38; 10:48.</p>

<p>The benefit which the Lord God, on His part, declares
through the sign of baptism, is the washing away of the sinful
corruptions of the soul, through the shedding of the blood of
Christ; which signifies the forgiveness of sins, obtained
through this blood, to the assurance of a good conscience with
God, by which believers comfort themselves with the promise of
eternal salvation. Acts 22:16; Col. 1:14; I John 1:7; Heb. 1:3;
Rev. 1:5.</p>

<p>The obligations which baptism lays upon those baptized are:
That they, burying their sins thereby into the death of Christ,
bind themselves to the newness of the life of Jesus, in order
to employ, as members of the body of Christ (having put on
Christ), each his several gift, for the maintenance and
improvement of this body in spiritual and temporal things; and
further, that they as the true household of God, and citizens
of the heavenly Jerusalem, must obey the civil laws of their
King by observing all His commandments. Rom. 6:3, 4; Col. 2:12;
Gal. 3:27; I Cor. 12:25; Eph. 2:19; Matt. 28:20.</p>

<h2>OF THE HOLY SUPPER</h2> 

<p>The holy Lord's Supper is an ordinance instituted by Jesus
Christ in remembrance of Himself, to be observed until His
coming, by all who are baptized on true faith in Christ to be
one body, in the church of the New Testament. Matt. 26:26;
22:19; 1 Cor. 11:24, 26.</p>

</div><div id="32"> 

<p>This rite consists in this, that a minister of the Gospel,
according to the institution of Christ, and the usage of His
apostles, take bread and wine for a holy purpose, breaks the
bread, and pours in the wine, and, after preparation and giving
of thanks, dispenses both to the believing members. The broken
bread is eaten, and the wine drank; Christ's passion or bitter
suffering and death, and the shedding of His precious blood;
also the motives for this, together with the benefits of His
death, through which man receives the remission of his sins,
which is signified by this visible signall this is proclaimed
thereby, in order that the believing church may give thanks to
God for this benefit, and, as behooves members of one body,
live and walk together here, as one heart and soul, in peace
and love and unity. Luke 22:19, 20; Acts 2:42; 20:11; I Cor.
10:16, 17; 11:23-25; Acts 4:32.</p>

<p>The sum of all that has been said is: (1) That the Lord
Christ is the foundation and only meritorious cause of eternal
salvation; (2) that true faith in Him is the means whereby we
become children of God and partakers of His merits; (3) that
the children of God are to be known outwardly by the confession
and fruits of their faith; (4) that God, through the external
signs of Holy Baptism and the Supper, sets before the eyes of
His children His gracious benefits, and binds them, as members
of Jesus Christ, to one body, that is, to a church of God and
Christ, whereby they are also admonished to the obedience they
owe.</p>

<p>Here the answer to the first question might be concluded,
but, since the Lord God, for the welfare of His church, and
propagation of the truth, as being promotive of the honor of
His name and the salvation of mankind, has instituted other
ceremonies and laws, besides certain offices, which, according
to the circumstances of the case, the true members of the
church of God are bound to observe; we shall, as briefly as is
possible and proper, subjoin these to what has preceded; and
this the more, as our peace presentation to people of the same
faith points partly to them; that it may appear the more
clearly, whether they agree with us, and we with them, in the
order of the Christian household, to live according to it,
through Christian obedience, together in love, peace and unity,
without thinking for any reason, ever again to separate one
from 'another.</p>

<h2>OF THE OFFICE OF TEACHER AND DEACON IN THE CHURCH; ALSO HOW THE ELECTION TO, AND THE CONFIRMATION IN, THESE OFFICES, MUST PROCEED, ACCORDING TO THE ORDINANCE OF GOD</h2> 

<p>As a body consists of different members, each of them having
its own and special function, according to the effectual
working in the measure of every part, making increase of the
body unto the edifying of itself, even so it is with the church
of God; for although each believer is a member of the body of
Christ, yet not all are therefore pastors, teachers, elders, or
deacons, for these are those who have been properly appointed
to such offices. For this reason, the administration of these
offices, as the public preaching of the Word of God, the
administering of the holy ordinances of baptism and supper,
according to the institution of Christ, and the usage of His
apostles, appertains to persons thus ordained, and elected
thereto-the pastors and teachers; just as it is the province of
the deacons, to provide for the necessities of the poor. Rom.
12:4; I Cor. 12:12; Eph. 4:7; Acts 20:28; Tit. 1:1; Rom. 12:7;
II Tim. 4 2; I Pet. 5:2; Matt. 28; Mark 16; Acts 6; I Tim. 3:8;
5:9.</p>

<p>Concerning their calling and election to these offices,
regard must be paid to the conditions required in those persons
who will worthily fill said offices, according to the
requirements:of the apostle, I Tim. 3; Tit. 1. In order to
obtain these, the church must prepare herself by a devout fear,
by fasting and prayer, with constant invocation of the name of
God, that as the discerner of all hearts He will show through
the unanimous vote of the church, whom He counts worthy of such
office; trusting that the Lord, who hears the prayers of those
who are assembled in His name, and grants the petition of the
godly, will, by His Holy Spirit, manifest His co-operation, and
bring forth those whom He knows to be fit for this office;
whereupon, after having been examined, they are confirmed to
this office, before the church, by the teachers, with the
laying on of the hands. Acts 1:24; 6; Luke 6:8; Matt. 2:8; I
Tim. 3:10; 4:14; 5:22; 11 Tim. 1:6.</p>

<h2>OF FEET WASHING</h2> 

<p>Feet washing we confess to be an ordinance of Christ, which
He Himself performed on His disciples, and after His example,
commended to true believers, that they should imitate it,
saying, "If I then, your Lord and Master, have washed your feet;
ye also ought to wash one another's feet. For I have given you
an example, that ye should do as I have done to you." Again, "If
ye know these things, happy are ye if ye do them" (John 13:14,
15, 17).</p>

<p>The purpose for which the Lord has instituted this ordinance
is principally this: That we may remember in true humiliation,
that by grace, we are washed from sin through the blood of
Christ, and that He, our Lord and Master, by His lowly example,
binds us to true humility towards one another. John 13:8, 10,
14. The apostle classes feet washing among the good works. I
Tim. 5:10.</p>

<h2>OF MARRIAGE</h2> 

<p>Marriage we hold to be an ordinance of God, which was first
instituted by God in Paradise, and confirmed in our first
parents, Adam and Eve, who were created after the image of God,
male and female, while they both were yet in favor with God.
Gen. 2:22; 1:27.</p>

</div><div id="33"> 

<p>In accordance with this first institution, and agreeably to
Christ's ordinance, Matt. 19:5, the marriage of Children of God
(who are not too nearly related by consanguinity) must be
entered into, after prayer, and kept inviolable, so that each
man shall have his own, only wife, and each wife her own
husband; and nothing shall separate them, save adultery. Lev.
18;20; I Cor. 5:1; Matt. 19; Rom. 7:2; I Cor. 7:2; Matt. 5:32;
I Cor. 9:5.</p>

<p>Thus, it is lawful for a brother to take a sister to wife; a
sister, also, may be married to whom she <i>will, only in the
Lord,</i> that is, according to the ordinance and pleasure of
the Lord, as mentioned before. But we do not find that God has
anywhere, through His Word, ordained or instituted, that a
believing member of the church should enter into matrimony with
an unbelieving, worldly person; on the contrary, we find, that
God the Lord was very angry with those who did so, and declared
that they were flesh, who would not be led by His Spirit;
therefore, we reprove all those who follow herein the lust of
their own flesh, in the same manner as we do other carnal
sinners. I Cor. 7:39; Deut. 7:3; Neh. 10:30; 13:25-27; Gen.
6:6.</p>

<h2>OF THE OFFICE OF THE MAGISTRACY</h2> 

<p>The secular power or magistracy is ordained by God in all
countries, and bears the sword not in vain, for it is the
minister of God, and a revenger, for the punishment of
evildoers, and for the praise of the good. Rom. 13:2, 4; Sir.
17:18, I Pet. 2:14.</p>

<p>Everyone is commanded to be subject unto the higher powers.
Whosoever therefore resisteth the power, resisteth the
ordinance of God: and they that resist shall receive to
themselves damnation. Rom. 13:1, 2.</p>

<p>All true believers are therefore in duty bound by the Word
of God, to fear the magistracy, to render honor and obedience
to the same, in all things not contrary to the commandments of
the Lord, and to pay tribute, custom, and taxes to them,
without gainsaying or murmuring, seeing that, according to the
words of Peter, we must submit ourselves to every ordinance of
man for the Lord's sake, and pray to Almighty God for them;
also to give our greatest thanks to the Lord for good and
reasonable authorities. Rom. 13:7; Acts 4:19; 5:29; I Pet.
2:13; Jer. 29:7; Bar. 1:11; I Tim. 2:2.</p>

<p>Yet, we do not find, that the Lord Jesus Christ has ordained
this office of secular authority in His spiritual kingdom-the
Church of the New Testament-or added it to tlw offices of His
church; nor has He given them laws adapted for such office and
government; but He said to His disciples: The kings and lords
of the Gentiles, and they that exercise authority among them,
are called gracious lords. But it shall not be so among you.
Matt. 20:25, 26; Luke 22:25, 26. Here we leave the matter, as
we do not consider it necessary to enter into further
details.</p>

<h2>OF THE SWEARING OF OATHS</h2> 

<p>For the confirmation of a cause which was just and true in
itself, the Old Testament fathers were permitted to swear by
the name of God. Deut. 6:13; Matt. 5:33.</p>

<p>But the Son of the living God, the King and Lawgiver of the
New Testament, whose command we are bound, through a voice from
God out of heaven, to obey, has forbidden Christians all
swearing, as does likewise, the apostle James; therefore, the
swearing of oaths is forbidden to the believers of the New
Testament. Matt. 3:17; 17:5; 5:34; James 5:12.</p>

<h2>OF SEPARATION</h2> 

<p>Separation, or the putting away from the church, is a decree
or sentence of the same, by virtue and authority of the Word of
God, against a member, or members, of the church, who, through
open sin, a scandalous life, heresy, or stubbornness, have
separated themselves from God and the fellowship of Jesus
Christ, and no longer belong into Christ's kingdom, or to His
church; therefore, their brotherhood, or sisterhood, is
renounced, by virtue of the Word of God, in the name of the
whole church. I Cor. 5:3; Matt. 18:18; I Cor. 5:1; Rom. 16:17;
Tit. 3; Matt. 18:17; Isa. 59; Tit. 1:16; I Cor. 6:9; Gal. 5:21;
I Cor. 5:12; II Cor. 2:8.</p>

<p>The reason for which this is done, and to which the church
must have respect in the separation, are principally these: (1)
to show that her doctrine does by no means permit such sins,
but is wholly opposed to them: that, by so doing, the doctrine
may be preserved pure, and the name of God glorified. I Tim.
1:20; Tit. 1:13; I I Tim. 4:15, 23; (2 ) through separation to
prove in fact that she is the enemy of sin, and will in no wise
tolerate it, in order that all causes for reproach to the
church may be averted. I Cor. 5:1, 2; Tit. 2:8; (3) that not,
by constant intercourse and fellowship with the evil, the good
become leavened or corrupted. I Cor. 5:7; II Tim. 2:17; (4)
that the sinner, through excommunication and withdrawal may be
convicted in his conscience, and moved to shame and
reformation, that he may be saved. II Thess. 3; I Cor. 5:5; and
(5) that others, by hearing and seeing this, may be admonished,
so that they will fear to follow such evil.</p>

<p>But when the separated sinner shows genuine fruits of
repentance, we must at all times be ready to receive him again
in peace to the Christian communion of the church, if he
earnestly requests it. II Cor. 2.</p>

<h2>OF SHUNNING</h2> 

<p>Since daily intercourse and mingling with ungodly apostates,
in common eating, drinking, buying, selling, and similar
unnecessary temporal or worldly transactions, is not only
dangerous for the pious, who, thereby, may become contaminated,
or be counted as companions of the apostate, but</p>

</div><div id="34"> 

<p>is also hurtful to the apostate himself, since he, through
such mingling, may probably harden in sin, and esteem his
offence of less consequence, therefore, we understand from the
Word of God, that-in order to avoid, according to the unction
of the Spirit, the dangers of sin, and offenses, and to bring
the apostate sinner to shame and repentance-the true member of
Christ must withdraw from the daily intercourse and communion
with impenitent apostates; must shun them, and have nothing to
do with them; and this without respect to persons, as far as
they are not bound to the apostate by any command of God; for
as one may do anything in the matter of shunning, which is
contrary to love, benevolence, Christian propriety and justice,
which supreme virtues a Christian is in duty bound to show unto
all men, even to his enemies, for which purpose God has given
all laws, which may, for no reason, be diminished, much less,
broken or transgressed. I Cor. 5:5; II Tim. 2:21; II Thess. 3;
Tit. 3; II Thess. 3:14; II Pet. 1:6; Tit. 2:12; Rom. 13:8;
Matt. 5:44.; Rom. 13:9, 10; I Tim. 1:5; Rev. 22:19; Matt. 5:19;
James 2:1.</p>

<h2>OF THE SECOND COMING OF CHRIST, THE RESUR RECTION OF THE DEAD, AND THE LAST JUDGMENT</h2> 

<p>Finally, we believe, that the Son of the living God, the
Lord Jesus Christ, our only Prophet, Priest and King, will
visibly, as He ascended, descend from heaven, in the clouds,
and all the holy angels of God with Him, with power and great
glory, with a shout, with the voice of the archangel, and with
the trump of God, which shall be heard everywhere. Then all men
who have lived upon earth, and have died, good and evil, just
and unjust, shall rise from the dead, in incorruption, with
their own body, in which they have lived; but those who still
live on that day, and have not tasted death, shall be changed,
in the twinkling of an eye, to incorruption, at the last sound
of the last trumpet. Acts 1:11; Rev. 1:7; II Thess. 1:7 I
Thess. 4:16; Matt. 24:50; Zeph. 1:16; Matt. 25:7; I I Cor.
5:10; Rom. 14:11; Jer. 5:29; Acts 24:15; I Cor. 15:42; Jer.
26:19; I Cor. 15:38, 52.</p>

<p>Thus, the whole human family shall be placed before the
judgment seat of Christ; that everyone may receive in his body,
according to that he hath done, whether it be good or bad. For
the Lord Jesus Christ shall then, as a shepherd, separate the
sheep from the goats. Those who have done good, He shall set on
His right hand, but those that have done evil, on the left; and
He shall there pronounce the eternal, irrevocable sentence. II
Cor. 5:10; Matt. 25:32, 33, 46; Jude 14.</p>

<p>To the true believers, who, through faith, have done works
of love and mercy, He shall say_, "Come, ye blessed of my
father, inherit the kingdom prepared for you from the
foundation of the world." These shall be caught up in the
clouds, to meet the Lord, who shall take them away with Him
into life eternal, in the heavenly glory and splendor, where
they shall forever be with the Lord, in the innumerable company
of the holy angels, in the society of Abraham, Isaac, Jacob,
and all the pious, with great, unspeakable joy and gladness. II
Pet. 1:5; Matt. 25:35; Luke 16:9; II Pet. 1:11; I Thess.
4:17,14; John 14:3; 17:24; Dan. 12:12; I Pet. 1:8, 9.</p>

<p>But the unrighteous who have not known God, nor obeyed the
Gospel of our Lord Jesus Christ, and have done no works of love
or mercy, shall then be sentenced to everlasting fire, in these
grievous and intolerable words, "Depart from me, ye cursed, into
everlasting fire, prepared for the devil and his angels;""there
shall be weeping and gnashing of teeth." I Cor. 6:9; II Thess.
1:8; Rom. 2:9; Matt. 25:41; 22:13.</p>

<p>These shall go, where their worm dieth not, and their fire
is not quenched. There will come upon them tribulation and
anguish, displeasure, wrath, and everlasting destruction from
the presence of the Lord, and from the glory of His power. Isa.
66:24; Mark 9:46; Mal. 4:1; Rom. 2:9; II Thess. 1:9; IV Esd.
9:10; Luke 16:24.</p>

<p>May the God of grace and mercy preserve us, through Jesus
Christ, His dear and beloved Son, in the power of the Holy
Spirit, from this dreadful punishment of the ungodly, and grant
us His grace, that we may live holy here on earth, and die
happy, to a glad resurrection and joyful appearance in the
presence of His glory. Amen.</p>

<p>Here follow two other questions and the answers to the same,
which we could adduce, but we deem it unnecessary, since the
treatise given embraces the substance or whole sum of the
confession of saving faith, if it is only well apprehended.</p>

<p>Added was also a letter, as a preparative for peace, and
signed by various persons (elders and teachers).</p>

<p>Given at Amsterdam, the 26th of September, 1627.</p>

<br />

   <h1>SECOND CONFESSION</h1>

<p>Also drawn up at Amsterdam, on the 7th of October, 1630,
called: Confession of Faith, and the principal articles of the
Christian doctrine.</p>

<p>[Not divided into separate articles, except the articles of
belief in God, and the manner of life in the church.]</p>

<p>We believe with the heart, and confess with the mouth, that
there is one only, eternal, incomprehensible, spiritual Being,
which, in Scripture, is called God; to whom alone is ascribed
omnipotence, mercy, righteousness, perfection, wisdom, all
goodness, and omniscience, and who is called a fountain of
life, and the source of all good, the Creator of all things;
and the Preserver of the same; who in the Old Testament bears
various appellations-the God of Abraham, Isaac and Jacob, the
God Schadai, the God Jehovah, the God of</p>

</div><div id="35"> 

<p>Israel, I am that I am, the Alpha and Omega, etc.; but who
in the New Testament is called by three distinct names-God the
Father, Son, and Holy Ghost, whom we confess to differ thus
far, namely, that the Father, as far as He is Father, is
another than the Son; and the Son, as far as He is Son, is
another than the Father, and the Holy Ghost, as far as He is a
true Holy Ghost, is another than the Father and the Son, and
that they, although differing in name, are nevertheless in
their divine nature and attributes, one only, undivided God,
according to the testimony of the apostle, "For there are three
that bear record in heaven, the Father, the Word, and the Holy
Ghost: and these three are one." Rom. 10:9; Deut. 6:4; Isa.
45:5, 21; Rom. 3:30; I Cor. 8:4; Eph. 4:6; Gen. 21:33; Ps.
90:2; Isa. 49:28; Ps. 145:3; IV Esd. 8:21; Gen. 17:1; II Cor.
6:18; Ex. 34:6, 7; Luke 6:36; Ps. 11:7; Col. 3; Lev. 19:2;
Matt. 5:48; I Tim. 1:2; Ps. 103:8; Matt. 19:17; Ps. 139; James
1:17; Gen. 1:1; Job 38 and 39; Ex. 3:6; 6:6; 5:1; Rev. 1:8;
22:13; Matt. 28:19; John 14:16; I John 5:7.</p>

<p>That this Holy God, by His great power and incomprehensible
wisdom, created, in six days, out of nothing, heaven and earth,
together with all things visible and invisible; and on the
sixth day prepared man a body of the dust of the earth,
breathed into his nostrils the breath of life, and thus made
him a living soul, or man; that He exalted this man above all
creatures, endowed him with wisdom, understanding and reason,
and made him lord over all creatures; nay, above all this,
created him in His divine image, in holiness and righteousness,
for immortality, and placed him in the garden of Eden, where he
might have been happy forever, yet requiring of him true
obedience, saying, "Of every tree of the garden thou mayest
freely eat; but of the tree of the knowledge of good and evil,
thou shalt not eat of it; for in the day that thou eatest
thereof thou shalt surely die." From this we see the free will
of man. Gen. 1:6, 9, 14,24; Jer. 32:17; Acts 17:24; Gen. 1:26,
28; 2:7; Sir. 17:5; Wisd. 2:23; Gen. 2:8, 9.</p>

<p>That man, through the subtlety of the serpent and the envy
of the devil, was brought to disobey his Creator; whereby he,
with all his posterity, fell into death and condemnation, and
thus, from the most glorious, became the most miserable
creature. Gen. 3:4; Wisd. 2:24; IV Esd. 7:48; Rom. 5:12; I Cor.
15:21.</p>

<p>That the Lord God, seeing the fall of His most glorious
creature, and that he could neither through himself nor through
any other creature be redeemed therefrom, showed that He was a
gracious and merciful God, yea, the supreme or only goodness,
in that He sought to reconcile unto Himself, out of pure grace
and without any merit, man and all who had fallen in him. Ps.
49:8; Rev. 5:3; Ps. 33:5; Matt. 19:17; Rom. 5:12; 3:24; II Cor.
5:19.</p>

<p>But as the justice of God required, that the sin committed
should not go unpunished, and as no creature could satisfy the
former, he not only frequently promised man to Bend His only
beloved Son as a Saviour, but prefigured it by various types.
Gen. 3.:15; 12:3, 7; 16:18; 24:19; 7:14; 9:6; 11:10; 53; Jer.
23:5, 6; 33:15; Dan. 7:13; 9:24; Micah 5:2; Hag. 2:23; Matt.
3:1; Ex. 12:3; 25:17; Num. 21:9; Deut. 30:15; Sir. 15:14.</p>

<p>That the Lord, after as well as before the fall, left man
his free will to accept, through faith in the promised Saviour,
the proffered grace of God, or to reject it, is evident not
only from the sending out of His prophets, apostles, and
disciples, but also from the kind invitation of His beloved
Son; and this justly, in order that He, as a righteous judge,
might have just cause, on the last day, to punish the despisers
with the pains of hell, and reward the obedient lambs with the
joys of heaven. Matt. 28:19; Mark 16:15; Acts 17:31; Matt. 11:
28; 22:9; I Tim. 1:15; Tit. 2:11; 11 Thess. 1:8; Acts 3:46;
Rom. 2:5; Bar. 3:29; John 3:16, 36; I Thess. 1:6; Heb.
6:10.</p>

<p>That the Lord, being a true God, who does not repent of that
which He has promised, when the time which He, in the secret
counsels of His divine will, had determined was fulfilled, sent
His only, own and true Son as a redeemer unto the world. I John
5:20; Deut. 7:8; Gal. 4:4.</p>

<p>And since there has been for many years, and still is daily,
much disputation, concerning this birth of our Saviour,
according to the flesh; therefore, we believe and confess, that
it is a supernatural birth, which cannot be fathomed by human
reason. Yet, we believe and confess, by virtue of the
Scriptures, that the eternal, not <i>spoken,</i> but itself
<i>speaking,</i> real Word, which was before the foundation of
the world in great glory with the Father, was before Abraham,
was in the beginning with God, and was itself God; whose goings
forth have been from of old, from everlasting, and through
which all things are created and have their being; that this
same, real Word, in the fullness of the time, came forth from
the Father, and descended from heaven into the lowest parts of
the earth, and, according to the prophecy (Isa. 7), was (at
Nazareth, that He might be called a Nazarene) conceived in the
virgin body of Mary (who, although betrothed to Joseph of the
house of David, yet was not known of him) by the power of the
most high God, and the overshadowing of the Holy Ghost, and
became flesh, remaining what He had been, namely, God and the
Son of God, and becoming what He had not been, namely, man and
the son of man; in this manner, that we confess that the child
which Mary bore, and which was born at Bethlehem, grew up, and
suffered on the cross, was outwardly and inwardly, visibly and
invisibly, as He sojourned here, the only, own, and true Son of
God, and the Redeemer of us all. John 1:1; .17:5; 8:58; Micah
5:1; John 1:3; 16:28; Eph. 4:9; Matt. 1:20; Luke 1:31; Matt.
2:23; John 1:14; Rom. 9:5; Ps. 2:7; Matt. 3:17; Luke 2:6, 40;
Matt. 27; 17:5.</p>

</div><div id="36"> 

<p>We believe and confess also, that He came to redeem us from
the curse, and, therefore, became obedient unto the law, was
circumcised on the eighth day, and named after the name
announced by the angel before He was born, namely, Jesus, that
He might make His holy name to agree with His holy work,
namely, to save His people from their sins. Gal. 3:13; 4:5;
Gen. 17:12; Gal. 4:4; Luke 2:21; Matt. 1:21; 18:11; Luke
19:10.</p>

<p>We also confess that He is our only true high Prophet, High
Priest, and spiritual King, who, in His office as a prophet has
proclaimed unto us God's great, secret counsel of the eternal
peace with God, through the holy Gospel, and, moreover, all
that is necessary fox us to the new life. Deut. 18:15; Ps.
110:4; Heb. 3:1; Jer. 33:15; Matt. 2:15;13:35; Luke 10:5; John
3:3; Matt. 18:9.</p>

<p>Who, in His office as priest, has not only offered up on the
cross a sacrifice for His believing lambs that will avail
forever; but, after His glorious resurrection, has entered into
the holy of holies, yea, the most holy, namely heaven, not by
the blood of goats and calves, but by His own blood; by which
He has obtained eternal redemption for all those who believe in
Him, yea, sitteth on the right hand of God His heavenly Father,
where, as a high priest, He pours out His holy prayers for the
ignorance of His people, and obtains forgiveness for them. Eph.
5:2; Heb. 10:12; 9:12; Col. 3:1; Heb. 5:2, 5.</p>

<p>Who, in His office as king, as a victorious prince has
vanquished death, the devil, hell, and all our enemies, and has
prepared a place for the members of His kingdom; ruling with
the scepter of His word, and protecting those who put their
trust in Him, helping them to triumph till they receive the
everlasting kingdom at His hand. II Tim. 1:10; Heb. 2:14, 15;
John 14:2; Ps. 45:6; Eccles. 29:25; II Cor. 2:14.</p>

<p>But since His kingdom was not of this world, He did not take
possession of it by carnal weapons of iron or steel, but
through suffering and fighting in the flesh; to which end He
prepared Himself for temptation, tribulation and suffering, and
took upon Him the cursed death of the cross, under Pontius
Pilate; we confess, moreover, that this same Lord Jesus Christ,
who was crucified at Jerusalem, and tasted death on mount
Calvary, with exclamation of His groaning Spirit, and amidst
the convulsions of heaven and earth, was the only and own Son
of God, and that we are reconciled unto God by the blood and
death of His Son, who by Himself purged our sins. John 18:36;
Matt. 4:1; Luke 4:1; Matt. 16:21; Gal. 3:13.; Deut. 21:23; I
Tim. 6:13; Matt. 27; Luke 23; I John 3:16; Rom. 8:22; 5:10;
Heb. 1:3.</p>

<p>Who, also, as a sign that He was really dead, was taken down
from the cross by Joseph of Arimathea; who wrapped Him in a
clean white cloth, and laid Him in a new hewn tomb, before
which a great stone was rolled, and a guard placed. Matt.
27:57. But, since it was impossible that He should be held by
the hands of death, or that the Holy One should see corruption,
therefore we believe and confess also, that by the glory of the
Father, according to the predictions of the prophets, He was
raised from the dead on the third day, amidst the convulsions
of heaven and earth, and arose bodily; and that He certainly
also confirmed His resurrection for forty days by words, signs,
and miracles, that He taught, comforted, and admonished His
disciples, and finally, on Mount Olivet, was received by a
cloud, and in their sight ascended visibly unto heaven, and
entered into the holy of holies, seating Himself, as a true
high priest, mediator, and advocate between God and man, on the
right hand of the Majesty on high, where He appears continually
before His Father's face to make intercession for His
believers. Acts 2:24; Ps. 16:10; Rom. 6:4; Acts 13:34; Matt.
28:2; John 20:4; Luke 24:36; Acts 1:12; Heb. 9:12; I John 2:1;
I Tim. 2:5; Rom. 8:34.</p>

<p>And since before His precious suffering He taught and
comforted them, not to let their hearts be afraid; that when He
should have ascended to heaven, He would send them another
comforter, the Holy Ghost; therefore, we believe that our Lord
and Saviour Jesus Christ, blessed forever, was, as true God,
also found true in this particular, and did send, ten days
after His ascension, the Holy Ghost in visible form to, or
upon, His apostles in Jerusalem; which Holy Ghost is a wisdom,
strength, and power of God, that proceeds from the Father
through the Son, and, no less than the Father and the Son, is
with them an eternal, undivided God; also a teacher, leader and
guide to all godfearing and consolation-seeking souls, showing
them the way to and into the spiritual Canaan. John 14:1;
15:26; 16:7; Matt. 21:3; Rom. 9:5; John 5:20; Acts 2:2; Luke
1:35; Acts 5:3; John 14:26.</p>

<p>We believe, also, that the Lord God chose, first the holy
angels in heaven, then, two sanctified persons in Paradise, and
finally, of all the various nations of the earth, a penitent
and believing people for His people; which is not only called a
general Christian church or congregation of Godfearing men; but
which the Lord Christ has purchased with His precious blood,
and washed and cleansed with the waters of the Holy Ghost, that
He might present to Himself a glorious church, not having spot,
or wrinkle, or any such thing. And since the same is so dear to
Him, He would, for the prosperity and growth of His kingdom,
not leave this holy church unprovided for; but provided her,
not only before, but also after His ascension, with faith,
love, hope, and other ordinances, and also with two special
ministries, namely, the ministry of the holy Word, and the care
for the poor, or the office of deacon; and appointed in it,
some prophets, pastors, teachers, helpers and rulers, to
provide by common counsel wisely for the church of God; and
sent them out.</p>

</div><div id="37"> 

<p>Gen. 2:22; I V Esd. 5:27; Acts 20:28; Eph. 5:26; I Cor.
6:20; Luke 10:1; Eph. 4:11; I Cor. 12:28; Mark 16:15.</p>

<p>In like manner, the apostles also commanded their followers,
to choose such men with fasting and prayer. First, they shall
be examined, then let them minister; and the believer shall
honor, love and obey these men. Acts 6:3; 16:2; I Tim. 3:10; I
Thess. 5:13; Heb. 13:17; I Tim. 5:17, 18.</p>

<p>And, inasmuch as this church bears the figure of the true
church in heaven, they practice here on earth, externally in
the preaching of the Word, of baptism, the supper, and other
Christian ordinances, and internally in the spirit, a true
communion, here and also in heaven with God and all the
sanctified of the Lord, after which, in the last day, the true
reality will follow. Acts 4:32; Heb. 12:22.</p>

<p>Matters, whereby those who unite in this church, submit
willingly and obediently to the customs, laws and ordinances,
which the Lord Christ, as the chief Head of His church; Eph.
5:32, and only Lawgiver of the New Testament, Matt. 28:20, has
ordained in His church, and which are also taught and, in our
weakness, practiced by us, viz.:</p>

<p><i>1. The Baptism</i> of <i>penitent and believing
ad</i>ults, which is an external evangelical act, in which the
man who truly repents of his sins, who clothes his heart with
faith in Christ, and thereby mortifies and buries his earthly
members, and arises to a new, penitent life, is baptized by an
unblamable minister ordained thereto, with common water, in the
name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost, for
the remission of all his sins; and such a man, once baptized
upon true repentance and scriptural faith, we do not baptize
again. Acts 2:38; Mark 16:15, 16; Acts 8:14, 34, 36, 37; 10:43;
I Cor. 3:5; Rom. 6:4;Matt. 3:11; Acts 10; Matt. 28:19; Eph.
4:5; Heb. 6:2.</p>

<p>2. <i>The holy Supper</i> of <i>the Lord,</i> also called
the Christian communion, which is to be held among believers
only, not with <i>consecrated,</i> but with com<i>mon</i> bread
and wine; not only in remembrance of the precious, holy, and
bitter suffering and death, and the glorious resurrection of
our Saviour and Redeemer Jesus Christ, but also of the
consolatory fruits thereby prepared for all believers; that
they, by virtue of this, may not only be moved to sincerely
deplore the bitter suffering and death of Jesus Christ, which
He endured for the remission of their sins; but also to praise
and bless the Lord, with an internal, spiritual thanksgiving,
for the benefits which have sprung therefrom; and, also, to
confirm their Christian, brotherly, and spiritual communion by
a holy and godly life, to the praise of the Lord. Matt. 26:26;
Luke 22:19; Acts 2:46; 20:7; Mark 14:22, 23; John 6:51; I Cor.
10:16, 17; I Cor. 11:23, 24.</p>

<p>3. Then follows the <i>Washing o</i> f <i>the Saints'
Feet;</i> that is, when our fellow believers from distant
places come to visit us, we wash-their. feet, according as
opportunity offers, after the custom of the Old Testament, and
the example of Christ; thereby declaring our humility toward
God and our neighbor, with an humble prayer, that the Lord
would strengthen us more and more in humility, and that, like
as we have washed one another's feet, He would be pleased to
wash and cleanse our souls with His blood and the waters of the
Holy Ghost, from every stain ,and impurity of sin, that we may
appear pure and. blameless before His Father. Gen. 18:4; John
13:5; I Tim. 5:10; Luke 22:26; Phil. 2:3.</p>

<p>4. Likewise, <i>The Works of Love,</i> which we divide into
three parts: (1) -That a believer is bound to bring his alms,
according as the Lord has blessed him, to the deacons, that
they may have wherewith to properly support the poor believers.
(2) To visit, comfort, attend, and nurse, according to the
nature of the case, the sick, imprisoned and sorrowing hearts.
(3) When we see our fellow believers in oppressive household
cares, bad circumstances, or with an insufficient income, to
assist them with advice and in deed, and by giving them our
custom in preference to a stranger. Matt. 6:1; Luke 12:33;
16:9; Acts 6:13; Matt. 25:35; Heb. 13:1-3.</p>

<p>5. As <i>Marriage</i> which was good and rightly instituted
in Paradise, was afterwards abused through lust by the children
of the first world and also through hardness of heart by the
Jews, the great Lawgiver of the New Testament restored it
according to its original ordinance, Matt. 19:4; and the
apostle says, I Cor. 7:39, "The wife is bound by the law as long
as her husband liveth; but if her husband be dead, she is at
liberty to be married to whom she will; only in the Lord." By
this we understand that a believer is not at liberty to unite
in marriage with an unbeliever; but only with one, who, with
him, of one heavenly Father, of incorruptible seed, and thus of
a spiritual generation, is born anew, heavenly and spiritual;
for since they in baptism have offered up their members unto
God, and have given them to the obedience of their Head,
Christ, they cannot take away these, their members from Christ,
their Head, and be yoked together with one who is
unregenerated. Gen. 2:24; 6:1, 2; Dent. 24:1; Matt. 19:8; I
Pet. 1:23; John 3:15; Rom. 12:1; I Pet. 1:22; Eph. 5:23.</p>

<p>* 6. The <i>Office of the Secular Authority</i> we recognize
as an ordinance of God, for the protection of the good, and the
punishment of the wicked; we also recognize that we owe unto it
honor, obedience, custom, taxes, and tribute, and that we
should also pray for it; but we do not find that Paul mentions
it among the offices of the church, nor that Christ taught His
disciples such a thing, or called them to it; but, on the
contrary, that He enjoined them to follow Him in His
defenseless life and cross-bearing footsteps, prohibiting all
revenge, not only that with arms, but also to return railing
for railing, and, on the contrary, com-</p>

</div><div id="38"> 

<p>manding to pray for one's enemies, to do good unto them who
do us evil; and much of a similar nature which is connected
with the office of the magistracy; hence we are afraid to fill
such offices in our Christian calling. Rom. 13:2, 3; I Pet.
2:13; Acts 4:19; Matt. 22:17; Rom. 13:7; Tit. 3:1; Jer. 29:7; I
Cor. 12:28; Matt. 20:25; Luke 22:25; John 8:12; 10:27; Heb.
12:2; I Pet. 2:21; Rom. 12:19; Matt. 5:44.</p>

<p>7. The Swearing of Oathspermitted in the Old Testament, and
in which many abuses have crept, is prohibited by Christ and
James, without any distinction; therefore it is not lawful for
a Christian to swear the oath of blasphemy. Deut. 6:13; 10:20;
Matt. 5:37; James 5:12.</p>

<p>8. But as in a good government ordinances without penalties
lose their force the Lord also has not failed to place
penalties to His ordinances; for Paul says, "Them that sin,
rebuke before all, that others also may fear" (I Tim. 5:20).
Christ also, in Matt. 18, has taught us to rebuke sinners. Paul
teaches to purge out the old leaven, and to put away from among
us those that are wicked; by which we understand the Christian
Ban which is instituted for the shaming and conversion of the
sinner, and for the purpose of keeping the church pure, lest a
little leaven leaven the whole lump (I Cor. 5:6, 13; Deut.
13:5; II Thess. 3:14; Gal. 5:9), according to Matt. 16:19, "I
will give unto thee the keys of the kingdom of heaven"; and
Matt. 18:18, "Whatsoever ye shall bind on earth shall be bound
in heaven; and whatsoever ye shall loose on earth shall be
loosed in heaven." This disciple is used against those who have
once been enlightened, and have received for truth the sound
doctrine of Christ, but who afterwards fall into false doctrine
and heresy. These, after they have been admonished once or
twice, but still persist in their evil principles, shall, by
Christian Separation, be avoided and shunned. Tit. 3:10.
Further, it is also used against persons who are going astray
in the gross works of the flesh, upon sufficient confession of
such persons themselves, or upon the testimony of other
commendable witnesses; for such the church must have, before
she ma proceed with the separation. Gal. 5:21; Eph. 5:; I Cor.
5:3; 6:9.</p>

<p>9. We understand that Marrying out of the Churchis sinful,
since it is contrary to the command of the Lord, and has at
various times been reproved by the Lord and His prophets,
through deeds as well as through words; and since it is a sin,
arising either from a carnal, sensual life, or from a want of
confidence in God, as though He would not provide him with a
virtuous spouse; and is, moreover, committed with
premeditation, for which reason it cannot be included in Gal.
6:1, "If a man be overtaken in a fault, restore such an one in
the spirit of meekness," but much rather in Num. 15:30, "The
soul that doeth aught presumptuously .... shall be cut off from
among his people," therefore many God-fearing men, who were
assembled at different times, have understood, as also we
understand, that marriage out of the church, with impenitents
and unbelievers, is also to be punished with separation from
the church, that they may the more earnestly seek
repentance.</p>

<p>But as all sins are not equally great, and do not actually
reserve separation without previous admonition, there is
observed in the reproving of sin between brother and brother
the rule in Matt. 18:15-18. And if any man is overtaken in a
fault, then the rule Gal. 6:1 is followed.</p>

<p>Now, since we also understand that there can be no
separation where no withdrawing is found, we confess also that
we are in duty bound to admonish (I Thess. 3:15) the one
separated, to reconcile himself to the church by true
repentance; and if there is in him a willingness to reconcile
himself, to make haste with the anointing or
reinstating<i>,</i> and not to wait with those who have married
out of the church, until he or she bring with him, or her, the
spouse married out of the church. II Cor. 2:8. But if the good
admonition. should be heedlessly rejected, since the daily
intercourse of the ungodly apostates is unedifying, polluting,
offensive, and frequently hardens the sinner in his wicked
life; we confess that the person separated, or punished with a
ban, is to be avoided and shunned, even without the aforesaid
admonition, immediately after the separation, in common, free,
worldly transactions, as: In eating and drinking, buying and
selling, and such like unnecessary matters; yet with this
distinction, that it be done with such moderation and
discretion that the Word of God may everywhere retain its
place, and the higher laws and commandments of the Lord, by
which the believer is bound to the separated one, be not
broken, but that everywhere necessity, word, promise, love,
benevolence, mercy, justice, and Christian discretion be
observed. I Cor. 5:5; II Tim. 2:16-18; II Thess. 3:14; Tit.
3:10; Luke 6:36; II Pet. 1:6.</p>

<p>Likewise, if one man understand the passage respecting
shunning, in I Cor. 5, in a higher, and another man, in a lower
sense, both men being God-fearing in their life, they should,
until further enlightenment, be borne with in love, without
contention or disputing.</p>

<p>Whosoever seeks, in human weakness, to live according to
these, the chief, as well as to other commandments, doctrines,
and ordinances of the Lord (more explicitly defined in His holy
Word), and thus to accomplish his pilgrimage on this earth, of
him we believe that he will not only feel at his departure from
earth a sure witness of his conscience, and have a glad hope;
but at the resurrection of the dead will indeed find it to be
so, that all his sins will be forgiven him through the holy
merits and comforting intercession of Christ. Luke 24:47; Col.
1:14; Acts 13:38; I Tim. 2:5; I John 2:1; Rom. 8:34.</p>

</div><div id="39"> 

<p>Finally, we believe also, that our Saviour Jesus Christ,
forever blessed, shall visibly come again in the clouds, like
as He ascended before; not so humble, lowly, and serving, as He
appeared to the world in His holy incarnation; but glorious and
magnificent, with the power and glory of all His angels; not to
call the sinner to repentance, but to hold the last judgment;
to which end He will not only sit upon the throne of His glory,
but, as the natural sun in springtime draws forth from the
earth, not only flowers, herbs and good fruits, but also
nettles, thistles, and thorns, so also, the true Sun of
righteousness, Jesus Christ, blessed forever, will then, with
the sound of the trumpet call forth and cause to arise from the
earth, all the great number of the dead who from the beginning
of the world up to the present day have lived, died, and sown
their bodies in the earth to corruption, and as the womb her
fruit so shall the sea, hell, and death give up their dead;
then shall the dead be covered with their own skin, and with
their own eyes behold God, yea, be clothed with their own
bodies, in or with which they have here, served or despised the
Lord. And after those who then will be still living, will have
been changed to immortality in the twinkling of an eye, the
general multitude of all mankind will be placed before the holy
throne of God, where the books of conscience shall be opened,
and also another book, which is the book of life; and the dead
shall be judged according to that which is written in these
books, that every one may receive in his own body, either good
or evil, according to what they have done, or how they have
lived here. Then will the Lord, as a righteous judge, separate
the believers from the ungodly, as a shepherd divideth the
sheep from the goats; and will set the believers, as obedient
lambs, on His right hand; but the unbelievers, as wicked,
rebellious stinking goats, on His left hand. He will look upon
the lambs with His loving eyes, and say to them in a voice
sweet as the honey comb, "Come, ye blessed of my Father, inherit
the kingdom prepared for you from the foundation of the world."
But upon the goats His angry face shall be like the lightening,
and His voice sound like the thunder, and He shall say to
them, "Depart from me, ye cursed, into everlasting fire,
prepared for the devil and his angels." Matt. 1:21; Acts 4:12;
I Tim. 1:15; Acts 1:11; Rev. 1:7; Matt. 24:30; II Thess. 1:7;
Matt. 25:31; 16:27; Acts 17:31; Jude 14; Dan. 7:9, 13; Mal.
4:2; I Thess. 4:16; Matt. 24:31; John 5:29; Dan. 12:2; I Cor.
15:42; I V Esd. 7:32; Rev. 20:13; Job 19:26; Rev. 1:7; I I Cor.
5:10; Matt. 16:27; Rom. 2:6; I Cor. 15:51; Matt. 25:32; Ezek.
34:17; Matt. 25:33, 34, 41; IV Esd. 16:10; II Thess. 1:8; Luke
17:24.</p>

<p>And we also further confess that then the heavens shall pass
away with a great noise, the sun shall be darkened, and the
moon be changed into blood, the star, shall fall from heaven,
and the earth and all that is therein shall be burned with
fire; and hen shall the irrevocable sentence of the Greatest
King be executed. II Pet. 3:10; Rev. 6:12,13.</p>

<p>Then shall the ungodly, like sheep for the slaughter, be
driven to hell, and be cast into the great bottomless pit,
where there will be no lack of fuel. There they shall not be
laid on beds of down, but on biting moths, and be covered with
gnawing worms, and tormented with flaming fire, so that their
worm shall not die, neither shall their fire be quenched, but
the torment of their pain shall ascend as the smoke of a fiery
furnace, and it shall last forever and ever. But on the
contrary, we confess, that the blessed of God shall be caught
up in the clouds, to meet the Lord in the air, and shall then
be led by the Lord Christ, their spiritual bridegroom, into
heaven, before the throne of God, where He shall deliver up
again to the Father the kingdom and all power, that God may be
all in all. Ps.49:14; Isa. 30:33; 14:11; II Thess. 1:9; Mark
9:48; Isa. 66:24; Rev. 9:2; 14:11; I Thess. 4:17; Matt. 25:6; I
Cor. 15:28.</p>

<p>Then shall the blessed of God be changed through the glory
of God from glory to glory, their tears shall be wiped away;
the crown of life, of glory, and of gladness, shall be placed
on their heads; palms of victory shall be put in their hands,
and they shall be adorned with the white robe of the
righteousness of the saints. Thus shall they be joined to all
the saints of God, and be led to the fountain of living waters,
there to be refreshed for everlasting consolation; they shall
be fed on the spiritual mount Zion, yea, shall follow the sweet
Lamb, Jesus Christ, who has bought them with His blood and
death, in the heavenly pleasure grounds, through contemplation
of the holy God in His inestimable throne, the heavens in their
beauty, and the angels in their joy. II Cor. 3:18; Phil. 3:21;
Isa. 25:8; Rev. 7:17; James 1:12; II Tim. 4:8; IV Esd. 2:43,
46; Rev. 7:9; 19:8; Matt. 8:11; Rev. 7:17; 14:1, 4; IV Esd.
8:21; Bar. 3:24.</p>

<p>Then shall the blessed of God abound in-heavenly joy, so
that with angelic tongues and heavenly voices they will begin
to sing with all the saints of God the new song, giving unto
Him who sitteth upon the throne, and unto the Lamb, praise,
honor, glory, and blessing, for ever and ever. Amen. Rev. 14:3;
7:10,12.</p>

<p class="c8">Thus done by us, the undersigned ministers,
teachers, and elders of the United Friesic and High German
Churches, for ourselves, as well as in the name of our fellow
brethren and ministers, and strangers assembled at these
proceedings with us, here at Amsterdam. October the 7th, 1730,
new style, and was subscribed to by fourteen persons, heads of
the churches, for themselves as well as in the name of the
churches by whom they were sent.</p>

<p><i>____________________________</i></p>
<br />

<br />
<h1>THIRD CONFESSION</h1>

<p>Drawn up at Dort, at a certain peace convention on the 21st
of April, 1632, being a statement of the chief articles of our
general Christian faith, as the same are taught and practiced throughout in our church.</p>

</div><div id="40"> 

<h2>I. OF GOD AND THE CREATION OF ALL THINGS,</h2> 

<p>Since we find it testified that without faith it is
impossible to please God, and that he that would come to God
must believe that there is a God, and that He is a rewarder of
them that seek Him; therefore, we confess with the mouth, and
believe with the heart, with all the pious, according to the
holy Scriptures, in one eternal, almighty, and incomprehensible
God, the Father, Son and Holy Ghost, and in none more, nor in
any other; before whom no God was made or existed, nor shall
there be any after Him: for of Him, and through Him, and in
Him, are all things; to Him be praise and honor forever and
ever, Amen. Heb. 11:6; Deut. 6:4; Gen. 17:1; Isa. 46:8; 1 John
5:7; Rom. 11:36.</p>

<p>Of this same one God, who worketh all in all, we believe and
confess that He is the Creator of all things visible and
invisible; that He, in six days, created, made, and prepared,
heaven and earth, and the sea, and all that in them is; and
that He still governs and upholds the same and all His works
through His wisdom, might, and the word of His power, I Cor.
12:6; Gen. 1; Acts 14:15.</p>

<p>And- when He had finished His works, and had ordained and
prepared them, each in its nature and properties, good and
upright, according to His pleasure, He created the first man,
the father of us all, Adam; whom He formed of the dust of the
ground, and breathed into his nostrils the breath of life, so
that he became a living soul, created by God in His own image
and likeness, in righteousness and holiness, unto eternal life.
He regarded him above all other creatures, endowed him with
many high and glorious gifts, placed him in the pleasure garden
or Paradise, and gave him a command and prohibition; afterwards
He took a rib from Adam, made a woman therefrom, and brought
her to him, joining and giving her to him for a helpmate,
companion and wife; and in consequence of this He also caused,
that from this first* man Adam, all men that dwell upon the
whole earth have descended. Gen. 1:27; 2:7, 17, 18, 22.</p>

<h2>II. OF THE FALL OF MAN</h2> 

<p>We believe and _ confess, according to the holy Scriptures,
that these our first parents, Adam and Eve, did not continue
long in this glorious state in which they were created, but
that they, seduced by the subtlety and deceit of the serpent,
and the envy of the devil, transgressed the high commandment of
God and became disobedient to their Creator; through which
disobedience sin has come into the world, and death by sin,
which has thus passed upon all men, for that all have sinned,
and, hence, brought upon themselves the wrath of God, and
condemnation; for which reason they were of God driven out of
Paradise, or the pleasure garden, to</p>

<br /><cite>* The old edition says, "only" or"one". See Acts
17:26, "And bath made of one blood all nations of men." ill the
earth, in sorrow to eat of it, and to eat their bread in the
sweat of their face, till they should return to the earth, from
which they were taken; and that they, therefore, through this
one sin, became so ruined, separated, and estranged from God,
that they, neither through themselves, nor through any of their
descendants, nor through angels, nor men, nor any other
creature in heaven or on earth, could be raised up, redeemed,
or reconciled to God, but would have had to be eternally lost,
had not God, in compassion for His creatures, made provision
for it, and interposed with His love and mercy. Gen. 3:6; I V
Esd. 3:7; Rom. 5:12,18; Gen. 3:23; Ps. 49:8; Rev. 5:9; John
3:16.</cite> 

<h2>III. OF THE RESTORATION OF MAN THROUGH THE PROMISE OF THE COMING CHRIST</h2> 

<p>Concerning the restoration of the first man and his
posterity we confess and believe, that God, notwithstanding
their fall, transgression, and sin, and their utter inability,
was nevertheless not willing to cast them off entirely, or to
let them be forever lost; but that He called them again to Him,
comforted them, and showed them that with Him there was yet a
means for their reconciliation, namely, the immaculate Lamb,
the Son of God, who had been foreordained thereto before the
foundation of the world, and was promised them while they were
yet in Paradise, for consolation, redemption and salvation, for
themselves as well as for their posterity; yea, who through
faith, had, from that time on, been given them as their own;
for whom all the pious patriarchs, unto whom this promise was
frequently renewed, longed and inquired, and to whom, through
faith, they looked forward from afar, waiting for the
fulfillment, that He by His coming, would redeem, liberate, and
raise the fallen race of man from their sin, guilt and
unrighteousness. John 1:29; I Pet. 1:19; Gen. 3:15; I John 3:8;
2:1; Heb. 11:13, 39; Gal. 4:4.</p>

<h2>IV. OF THE COMING OF CHRIST INTO THIS WORLD, AND THE PURPOSE FOR WHICH HE CAME</h2> 

<p>We believe and confess further, that when the time of the
promise, for which all the pious forefather's had so much
longed and waited, had come and was fulfilled, this previously
promised Messiah, Redeemer, and Saviour, proceeded from God,
was sent, and, according to the prediction of the prophets, and
the testimony of the evangelists, came into the world, yea,
into the flesh, was made manifest, and the Word, Himself became
flesh and man; that He was conceived in the virgin Mary, who
was espoused to a man named Joseph, of the house of David; and
that she brought Him forth as her firstborn son, at Bethlehem,
wrapped Him in swaddling clothes, and laid Him in a manger.
John 4:25; 16:28; I Tim. 3:16; John 1:14; Matt. 1:23; Luke
2:7.</p>

</div><div id="41"> 

<p>We confess and believe also, that this is the same whose
goings forth have been from of old, from everlasting, without
beginning of days; or end of life; of whom it is testified that
He Himself is the Alpha and Omega, the beginning and the
ending, the first and the last; that He is the same, and no
other, who was foreordained, promised, sent, and came into the
world; who is God's only, first and own Son; who was before
John the Baptist, before Abraham, before the world; yea, who
was David's Lord, and the God of the whole world, the
first-born of every creature; who was brought into the world,
and to whom a body was prepared, which He yielded up as a
sacrifice and offering, for a sweet savor unto God, yea, for
the consolation, redemption, and salvation of all mankind. John
3:16; Heb. 1:6; Rom. 8:32; John 1:30; Matt. 22:43; Col. 1:15;
Heb. 10:5.</p>

<p>But as to how and in what manner this precious body was
prepared, and how the Word became flesh, and He Himself man, in
regard to this we content ourselves with the statement
pertaining to this matter which the worthy evangelists have
left us in their accounts, according to which we confess with
all the saints, that He is the Son of the living God, in whom
alone consist all our hope, consolation, redemption, and
salvation, which we neither may nor must seek in any other.
Luke 1:31, 32; John 20:31; Matt. 16:16:</p>

<p>We furthermore believe and confess with the Scriptures,
that, when He had finished His course, and accomplished the
work for which He was sent and came into the world, He was,
according to the providence of God, delivered into the hands of
the unrighteous; suffered under the judge, Pontius Pilate; was
crucified, dead, was buried, and, on the third day, rose from
the dead, and ascended to heaven; and that He sits on the right
hand of God the Majesty on high, whence He will come again to
judge the quick and the dead. Luke 22:53; 23:l; 24:6, 7,
51.</p>

<p>And that thus the Son of God died, and tasted death and shed
His precious blood for all men; and that He thereby bruised the
serpent's head, destroyed the works of the devil, annulled the
handwriting and obtained forgiveness of sins for all mankind;
thus becoming the cause of eternal salvation for all those who,
from Adam unto the end of the world, each in his time, believe
in, and obey Him. Gen. 3:15; I John 3:8; Col. 2:14; Rom.
5:18.</p>

<h2>V. THE LAW OF CHRIST, i.e., THE HOLY GOSPEL OR THE NEW TESTAMENT</h2> 

<p>We also believe and confess that before His ascension He
instituted His New Testament, and, since it was to be and
remain an eternal Testament, that He confirmed and sealed the
same with His precious blood, and gave and left it to His
disciples, yea, charged them so highly with it, that neither
angel nor man may alter it, nor add to it nor take away from
it; and that He caused the same, as containing the whole
counsel and will of His heavenly Father, as far as is necessary
for salvation to be proclaimed in His name by His beloved
apostles, messengers, and ministers-whom He called, chose, and
sent into all the world for that purpose-among all peoples,
nations, and tongues; and repentance and remission of sins to
be preached and testified of; and that He accordingly has
therein declared all men without distinction, who through
faith, as obedient children, heed, follow, and practice what
the same contains, to be His children and lawful heirs; thus
excluding no one from the precious inheritance of eternal
salvation, except the unbelieving and disobedient, the
stiffnecked and obdurate, who despise it, and incur this
through their own sins, thus making themselves unworthy of
eternal life. Jer. 31:31; Heb. 9:15-17; Matt. 26:28; Gal. 1:8;
I Tim. 6:3; John 15:15; Matt. 28:19; Mark 16:15; Luke 24:47;
Rom. 8:17; Acts 13:46.</p>

<h2>VI. OF REPENTANCE AND REFORMATION OF LIFE</h2> 

<p>We believe and confess, that, since the imagination of man's
heart is evil from his youth, and, therefore, prone to all
unrighteousness, sin, and wickedness, the first lesson of the
precious New Testament of the Son of God is repentance and
reformation of life, and that, therefore, those who have ears
to hear, and hearts to understand, must bring forth genuine
fruits of repentance, reform their lives, believe the Gospel,
eschew evil and do good, desist from unrighteousness, forsake
sin, put off the old man with his deeds, and put on the new
man, which after God is created in righteousness and true
holiness: for, neither baptism, supper, church, nor any other
outward ceremony, can without faith, regeneration, change or
renewing of life, avail anything to please God or to obtain of
Him any consolation or promise of salvation; but we must go to
God with an upright heart, and in perfect faith, and believe in
Jesus Christ, as the Scripture says, and testifies of Him;
through which faith we obtain forgiveness of sins, are
sanctified, justified, and made children of God, yea partake of
His mind, nature and image, as being born again of God from
above, through incorruptible seed. Gen. 8:21; Mark 1:15; Ezek.
12:2; Col. 3:9,10; Eph. 4:22, 24; Heb. 10:22, 23; John
7:38.</p>

<h2>VII. OF HOLY BAPTISM</h2> 

<p>Concerning baptism we confess that all penitent believers,
who, through faith, regeneration, and the renewing of the Holy
Ghost, are made one with God, and are written in heaven, must,
upon such scriptural confession of faith, and renewing of life,
be baptised with water, in the most worthy name of the Father,
and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost, according to the command
of Christ, and the teaching, example, and practice of the
apostles, to the burying of their sins, and thus be
incorporated into the communion of the saints; henceforth to
learn to observe all things which the</p>

</div><div id="42"> 

<p>Son of God has taught, left, and commanded His disciples.
Acts 2:38; Matt. 28:19, 20; Rom. 6:4; Mark 16:16; Matt. 3:15;
Acts 8:16; 9:18; 10:47; 16:33; Col. 2:11,12.</p>

<h2>VIII. OF THE CHURCH OF CHRIST</h2> 

<p>We believe in, and confess a visible church of God, namely,
those who, as has been said before, truly repent and believe,
and are rightly baptized; who are one with God in heaven, and
rightly incorporated into the communion of the saints here on
earth. These we confess to be the chosen generation, the royal
priesthood, the holy nation, who are declared to be the bride
and wife of Christ, yea, children and heirs of everlasting
life, a tent, tabernacle and habitation of God in the Spirit,
built upon the foundation of the apostles and prophets, of
which Jesus Christ Himself is declared to be the cornerstone
(upon which His church is built). This church of the living
God, which He has acquired, purchased, and redeemed with His
own precious blood; with which, according to His promise, He
will be and remain always, even unto the end of the world, for
consolation and protection, yea, will dwell and walk among
them, and preserve them, so that no floods or tempests, nay,
not even the gates of hell, shall move or prevail against
them-this church we say, may be known by her scriptural faith,
doctrine, love, and godly conversation, as, also, by the
fruitful observance, practice, and maintenance of the true
ordinances of Christ, which He so highly enjoined upon His
disciples. I Cor. 12: I Pet. 2:9; John 3:29; Rev. 19:7; Tit.
3:6, 7; Eph. 2:19-21; Matt. 16:18; I Pet. 1:18, 19; Matt.
28:20; II Cor. 6:16; Matt. 7:25.</p>

<h2>IX. OF THE ELECTION, AND OFFICES OF TEACHERS, DEACONS, AND DEACONESSES, IN THE CHURCH</h2> 

<p>Concerning the offices and elections in the church, we
believe and confess, that, since without offices and ordinances
the church cannot subsist in her growth, nor continue in
building, therefore the Lord Jesus Christ Himself, as a
husbandman in His house, has instituted, ordained, enjoined and
commanded His offices and ordinances, how everyone is to walk
therein, and give heed to and perform His work and calling, as
is meet, even as He Himself, as the faithful, great, chief
Shepherd and Bishop of our souls, was sent, and came into the
world, not to bruise, break, or destroy the souls of men, but
to heal and restore them, to seek the lost, to break down the
middle wall of partition, to make of twain one, and thus to
gather of Jews, Gentiles, and all nations, one flock, for a
church in His name, for which-that no one should err or be
lost-He Himself laid down His life, thus ministering to their
salvation, and liberating and redeeming them, (mark) wherein no
one else could help or assist them. Eph. 4:10-12; I Pet. 2:25;
.Matt. 12:19; 18:11; Eph. 2:14; Gal. 3:28; John 10:9,11,15; Ps.
49:8. And that He, moreover, before His departure, left His
church supplied with faithful ministers, apostles, evangelists,
pastors and teachers, whom He before, through the Holy Ghost,
had chosen with prayer and supplication; that they might govern
the church, feed His flock, and watch over, protect, and
provide for it, yea, do in all things, as He had gone before
.them, had taught, by example shown, and charged them, to teach
to observe all things whatsoever He had commanded them. Luke
10:1; 6:12, 13; John 2:15.</p>

<p>That the apostles, likewise, as faithful followers of
Christ, and leaders of the church, were diligent in this
respect, with prayer and supplication to God, through the
election of brethren; to provide every city, place, or church,
with bishops, pastors and leaders, and to ordain such persons
thereto, who would take heed unto themselves, and unto the
doctrine and flock, who were sound in faith, pious in life and
conversation, and of good report without as well as in the
church; that they might be an example, light, and pattern in
all godliness and good works, worthily administering the Lord's
ordinances-baptism and supper,-and that they might everywhere
(where such could be found) appoint faithful men who would be
able to teach others also, as elders, ordaining them by the
laying on of hands in the name of the Lord, and provide for all
the wants of the church according to their ability; so that, as
faithful servants, they might husband well their Lord's talent,
get gain with it, and, consequently, save themselves and those
who hear them. I Tim. 3:1; Acts 23:24; Tit. 1:5; I Tim. 4:16;
Tit. 2:1, 2; I Tim. 3:7; II Tim. 2:2; I Tim. 4:14; 5:2; Luke
19:13.</p>

<p>That they should also see diligently to it, particularly
each among his own over whom he has the oversight, that all
places be well provided with deacons( to look after and care
for the poor), who may receive the contributions and alms, in
order to dispense them faithfully and with all propriety to the
poor and needy saints. Acts 6:3-6.</p>

<p>And that also honorable aged widows should be chosen and
ordained deaconesses, that they with the deacons may visit,
comfort, and care for, the poor, feeble, sick, sorrowing and
needy, as also the widows and orphans, and assist in attending
to other wants and necessities of the church to the best of
their ability. I'Tim. 5:9; Rom. 16:1; James 1:27.</p>

<p>Furthermore, concerning deacons, that they, especially when
they are fit, and chosen and ordained thereto by the church,
for the assistance and relief of the elders, may exhort the
church (since they, as has been said, are chosen thereto), and
labor also in the Word and in teaching; that each may minister
unto the other-with the gift he has received of the Lord, so
that through mutual service and the assistance of every member,
each in his measure, the body of Christ may be improved, and
the vine and church of the Lord continue to grow, increase, and
be built up, according as it is proper.</p>

</div><div id="43"> 

<h2>X. OF THE HOLY SUPPER</h2> 

<p>We also confess and observe the breaking of bread, or
Supper, as the Lord Christ Jesus before His suffering
instituted it with bread and wine, and observed and ate with
His apostles, commanding them to observe it in remembrance of
Him; which they accordingly taught and practiced in the church,
and commanded that it should be kept in remembrance of the
suffering and death of the Lord; and that His precious body was
broken, and His blood shed, for us and all mankind, as also the
fruits hereof, namely, redemption and eternal salvation, which
He purchased thereby, showing such great love towards us sinful
men; whereby we are admonished to the utmost, to love and
forgive one another and our neighbor, as He has done unto us,
and to be mindful to maintain and live up to the unity and
fellowship which we have with God and one another, which is
signified to us by this breaking of bread. Matt. 26:26; Mark
14: 22; Acts. 2:42; I Cor. 10:16;11:23.</p>

<h2>XI. OF THE WASHING OF THE SAINTS' FEET*</h2> 

<p>We also confess a washing of the saints' feet, as the Lord
Christ not only instituted, enjoined and commanded it, but
Himself, although He was their Lord and Master, washed His
apostles' feet, thereby giving an example that they should
likewise wash one another's feet, and do as He had done unto
them; which they accordingly, from this time on, taught
believers to observe, as a sign of true humility, and,
especially, to remember by this feet washing, the true washing,
whereby we are washed through His precious blood, and made pure
after the soul. John 13:4-17; I Tim. 5:10.</p>

<h2>XII. OF THE STATE OF MATRIMONY</h2> 

<p>We confess that there is in the church of God an honorable
state of matrimony, of two free, believing persons, in
accordance with the manner after which God originally ordained
the same in Paradise, and instituted it Himself with Adam and
Eve, and that the Lord Christ did away and set aside all the
abuses of marriage which had meanwhile crept in, and referred
all to the original order, and thus left it. Gen. 1:27; Mark
10:4.</p>

<p>In this manner the apostle Paul also taught and permitted
matrimony in the church, and left it free for everyone to be
married, according to the original order, in the Lord, to
whomsoever one may get to consent. By these words, in <i>the
Lord,</i> there is to be understood, we think, that even as the
patriarchs had to marry among their kindred or generation, so
the believers of the New Testament have likewise no other
liberty than to marry among the chosen generation and spiritual
kindred of Christ, namely such, and no others, who have
previously become united with the church as one heart and soul,
have received one baptism, and</p>

<br /><cite>* The forefathers before the time of the law had
the custom of washing the feet of those who came to them
friendly and peaceably. Gen. 18:4; 19:2; 24:32; 43:24. stand in
one communion, faith, doctrine and practice, before they may
unite with one another by marriage. Such are then joined by God
in His church according to the original order; and this is
called, marrying in the Lord. II Cor. 7:2; I Cor. 9:5; Gen.
24:4; 28:2; I Cor. 7:39.</cite> 

<h2>XIII. OF THE OFFICE OF THE SECULAR AUTHORITY</h2> 

<p>We believe and confess that God has ordained power and
authority, and set them to punish the evil, and protect the
good, to govern the world, and maintain countries and cities,
with their subjects, in good order and regulation; and that we,
therefore, may not despise, revile or resist the same, but must
acknowledge and honor them as the ministers of God, and be
subject and obedient unto them, yea, ready for all good works,
especially in that which is not contrary to the law, will, and
commandment of God; also faithfully pay custom, tribute and
taxes, and to render unto them their dues, even also as the Son
of God taught and practiced, and commanded His disciples to do;
that we, moreover, must constantly and earnestly pray to the
Lord for them and their welfare, and for the prosperity of the
country, that we may dwell under its protection, earn our
livelihood, and lead a quiet, peaceable life, with all
godliness and honesty; and, furthermore, that the Lord would
recompense unto them, here, and afterwards in eternity, all
benefits, liberty and favor which we enjoy here under their
praiseworthy administration. Rom.. 13:1-7; Tit. 3:1; I Pet.
2:17; Matt. 22:21; 17:27; I Tim. 2:1.</p>

<h2>XIV. OF REVENGE</h2> 

<p>As regards revenge, that is, to oppose an enemy with the
sword, we believe and confess that the Lord Christ has
forbidden and set aside to His disciples and followers all
revenge and retaliation, and commanded them to render to no one
evil for evil, or cursing for cursing, but to put the sword
into the sheath, or, as the prophets have predicted, to beat
the swords into ploughshares, Matt. 5:39, 44; Rom. 12:14; I
Pet. 3:9; Isa. 2:4; Micah 4:3; Zech. 9:8, 9.</p>

<p>From this we understand that therefore, and according to His
example, we must not inflict pain, harm or sorrow upon any one,
but seek the highest welfare and salvation of all men, and
even, if necessity require it, flee for the Lord's sake from
one city or county into another, and suffer the spoiling of our
goods; that we must not harm any one, and, when we are smitten,
rather turn the other cheek also, than take revenge or
retaliate. Matt. 5:39.</p>

<p>And, moreover, that we must pray for our enemies, feed and
refresh them whenever they are hungry or thirsty, and thus
convince them by welldoing, and overcome all ignorance. Rom.
12: 19,20.</p>

<p>Finally, that we must do good and commend ourselves to every
man's conscience; and, accord-</p>

</div><div id="44"> 

<p>ing to the law of Christ, do unto no one that which we would
not have done to us. II Cor. 4:2; Matt. 7:12.</p>

<h2>XV. OF THE SWEARING OF OATHS</h2> 

<p>Concerning the Swearing of Oaths we believe and confess,
that the Lord Christ has set aside and forbidden, the same to
His disciples, that they should not swear at all, but that yea
should be yea, and nay, nay; from which we understand that all
oaths, high and low, are forbidden, and that instead of them we
are to confirm all our promises and obligations, yea, all our
declarations and testimonies of any matter, only with our word
yea, in that which is yea, and with nay, in that which is nay;
yet, that we must always, in all matters, and with everyone,
adhere to, keep, follow, and fulfill the same, as though we had
confirmed it with a solemn oath. And if we do this, we trust
that no one, not even the Magistracy itself, will have just
reason, to lay a greater burden on our mind and conscience.
Matt. 5:34, 35; James 5:12; II Cor. 1:17.</p>

<h2>XVI.OF THE ECCLESIASTICAL BAN, OR SEPARATION FROM THE CHURCH</h2> 

<p>We also believe in, and confess, a ban, Separation, and
Christian correction in the church, for amendment, and not for
destruction, in order to distinguish that which is pure from
the impure</p>

<p>namely, when any one, after he is enlightened, has accepted
~he knowledge of the truth, and been incorporated into the
communion of the saints, sins again unto death, either through
willfulness, or through presumption against God, or through
some other cause, and falls into the unfruitful works of
darkness, thereby becoming separated from God, and forfeiting
the kingdom of God, that such a one, after the deed is manifest
and sufficiently known to the church, may not remain in the
congregation of the righteous, but, as an offensive member and
open sinner, shall and must be separated, put away, reproved
before all, and purged out as leaven; and this for his
amendment, as an example, that others may fear, and to keep the
church pure, by cleansing her from such spots, lest, in default
of this, the name of the Lord be blasphemed, the church
dishonored, and offense given to them that are without; and
finally, that the sinner may not be condemned with the world,
but become convinced in .his mind, and be moved to sorrow,
repentance and reformation. Jer. 59:2; I Cor. 5:5,13; I Tim.
5:20; I Cor. 5:6; II Cor. 10:8; 13:10.</p>

<p>Further, concerning brotherly reproof or admonition, as also
the instruction of the erring, it is necessary to exercise all
diligence and care, to watch over them and to admonish them
with all meekness, that they may be bettered, and to reprove,
according as is proper, the stubborn who remain obdurate; in
short, the church must put away from her the wicked (either in
doctrine or life), and no other. James 5:19; Tit. 3:10; I Cor.
5:13.</p>

<h2>XVII OF SHUNNING THE SEPARATED</h2> 

<p>Concerning the withdrawing from, or shunning the separated,
we believe and confess, that if any one, either through his
wicked life or perverted doctrine, has so far fallen that he is
separated from God, and, consequently, also separated and
punished by the church, the same must, according to the
doctrine of Christ and His apostles, be shunned, without
distinction, by all the fellow members of the church,
especially those to whom it is known, in eating, drinking, and
other similar intercourse, and no company be had with him; that
they may not become contaminated by intercourse with him, nor
made partakers of his sins; but that the sinner may be made
ashamed, pricked in his heart, and convicted in his conscience,
unto his reformation. I Cor. 5:9-11; II Thess. 3:14.</p>

<p>Yet, in shunning as well as in reproving, such moderation
and Christian discretion must be used, that it may conduce, not
to the destruction, but to the reformation of the sinner. For,
if he is needy, hungry, thirsty, naked, sick, or in any other
distress, we are in duty bound, necessity requiring it,
according to love and the doctrine of Christ and His apostles,
to render him aid and assistance; otherwise, shunning would in
this case tend more to destruction than to reformation.</p>

<p>Therefore, we must not count them as enemies, but admonish
them as brethren, that thereby they may be brought to a
knowledge of and to repentance and sorrow for their sins, so
that they may become reconciled to God, and, consequently be
received again into the church; and that love may continue with
them, according as is proper. II Thess. 3:15.</p>

<h2>XVIII. OF THE RESURRECTION OF THE DEAD, AND THE LAST JUDGMENT</h2> 

<p>Finally, concerning the resurrection of the dead, we confess
with the mouth, and believe with the heart, according to
Scripture, that in the last day all men who shall have died,
and fallen asleep, shall be awaked and quickened, and shall
rise again, through the incomprehensible power of God; and that
they, together with those who then will still be alive, and who
shall be changed in the twinkling of an eye, at the sound of
the last trump, shall be placed before the judgment seat of
Christ, and the good be separated from the wicked; that then
everyone shall receive in his own body according to that he
hath done, whether it be good or evil; and that the good or
pious, as the blessed, shall be taken up with Christ, and shall
enter into life eternal, and obtain that joy, which eye hath
not seen, nor ear heard, neither hath entered into the heart of
man, to reign and triumph with Christ forever and ever. Matt.
22:30, 31; Dan. 12:12; Job 19:26, 27; Matt. 25:31; John 5:28;
II Cor. 5:10; I Cor. 15; Rev. 20:12; I Thess. 4:15; I Cor.
2:9.</p>

</div><div id="45"> 

<p>And that, on the other hand, the wicked or impious, as
accursed, shall be cast into outer darkness, yea, into the
everlasting pains of hell, where their worm shall not die, nor
their fire be quenched, and where they, according to holy
Scripture, can nevermore expect any hope, comfort or
redemption. Mark 9:44; Rev. 14:11.</p>

<p>May the Lord, through His grace, make us all worthy and
meet, that this may befall none of us; but that we may thus
take heed unto ourselves, and use all diligence, that on that
day we may be found before Him unspotted and blameless in
peace. Amen.</p>

<p>These, then, as has been briefly stated before, are the
principal articles of our general Christian faith, as we teach
and practice the same throughout in our churches and among our
people; which, in our judgment, is the only true Christian
faith, which the apostles in their time believed and taught,
yea, testified with their life, confirmed with their death,
and, some of them, also sealed with their blood; wherein we in
our weakness with them and all the pious, would fain abide,
live, and die, that we may afterwards obtain salvation with
them through the grace of the Lord.</p>

<p><i>Thus done and finished in our united churches, in the
city</i> of <i>Dortrecht, the 21st</i> of <i>April, 1632,' new
style, and was signed by the mutually united.</i></p>

<p>Besides that the last mentioned confession was received by
so many churches, and signed by their leaders, as has been
shown, also all the churches in Alsace and in the Palatinate,
in Germany, afterwards unanimously adopted and signed it;
wherefore it was undertaken to translate the same for their
benefit and that of others, into French and into German. This
is given as a remembrance. Here is the patience and faith of
the saints. Rev. 13:10.</p><br />

<br />

   <h1>OF THE UNGODLY AND FALSE CHURCH, WHICH IS THE OPPOSITE OF THE CHURCH OF GOD, AND THE ORIGIN, PROGRESS AND SUCCESSION OF THE SAME THROUGH ALL TIMES</h1>

<p>Where God builds a temple, says the old proverb, there the
devil builds another in opposition. This has been apparent ever
since the beginning of the world. For at the same time that
Abel became a <i>martyr</i> of God, and, therefore, a good
leader of the children of God, Cain made himself a
<i>murderer,</i> and became a leader of the children of Satan,
who belong to the ungodly and false church, as members of one
body. Gen. 4:8.</p>

<p>He was followed by Lamech, one of Cain's descendants, who
slew a young man, and afterwards spoke of it to his wives Addah
and Zillah, in a boasting and presumptuous manner. Gen.
4:23.</p>

</div><div id="46"> 

<p>The people of the first world universally, with the
exception of eight, followed in the footsteps of Lamech in
wickedness; they exercised tyranny, violence, and oppression,
and would not be governed by the Spirit of God. Gen. 6:3,
4.</p>

<p>The Sodomites followed in the same course, vexing with their
unbecoming walk the righteous soul of Lot from day to day. Gen.
19; II Pet. 2:8.</p>

<p>These were succeeded by the Egyptians, who imposed grievous
and insupportable burdens upon the people of God, and finally
sought their lives, yea pursued them even into the sea. Compare
Ex. 1:11 with Ex. 14:9,10, 23.</p>

<p>After these were the seven nations, or inhabitants, of the
land of Palestine, who were greater and mightier than the
children of Israel, but were banished by God on account of
their wickedness; namely the Canaanites, Hittites, Girgashites,
Amorites, Perizzites, Hivites, Jebusites, etc. Deut. 7:1,
2.</p>

<p>After these manifested themselves the Amorites, Moabites,
Midianites, Philistines, and many others, who disturbed,
oppressed, and harassed in manifold ways the people of God,
which was dwelling in quiet. See throughout in the book of the
judges, the books of Samuel, the Kings, and Chronicles.</p>

<p>The Chaldeans, Assyrians, and the inhabitants of the land of
Babylon, followed those already mentioned; they carried the
church of God away into foreign lands, burned the house of God,
and laid waste the city of Jerusalem, which God had chosen
above all cities of the whole earth. II Kings 1-17; Jer.
52:1-20; Lam. 1:1-5.</p>

<p>The mighty cities, Tyre and Sidon, in Phoenicia, and
afterwards, Chorazin, Bethsaida, Capernaum, which defied the
world itself with their greatness, and cast the threatenings of
God to the wind, lifted up their heads after the last
mentioned, but to their own destruction. Compare Isa. 23:4, 5;
Ezek. 27 and 28 throughout, with Matt. 11:20-23.</p>

<p>All these who have been mentioned, from Cain on, succeeded
one another in regular order, and may be considered as members
of the church of Satan; since they have neither in generation,
nor in faith, nor in worship, nor in manner of life, agreed
with the church of God, but opposed it in every respect.</p>

<p>After the coming of Christ, many who had adopted the
Christian religion and worship, apostatized, denying the-faith,
and thus becoming fellow members in the last mentioned,
ungodly, and wicked congregation; as, for instance: Simon
Magus, who by confession of faith, and baptism had joined
himself to the visible church of God, but fell from it,
desiring to purchase the gift of the Holy Ghost with money,
which, according to the apostle Peter, tended to his
destruction, although he afterwards, as it appears, was again
converted. Acts 8:13, 18-22.</p>

<p>Hymenaeus and Alexander, who concerning faith made
shipwreck, and were full of blasphemies, wherefore they were
put away from the church by Paul, and delivered unto Satan. I
Tim. 1:19, 20.</p>

<p>Phygellus and Hermogenes, who with the greater number of
those in Asia, were turned away from Paul, and, consequently,
also from the doctrine of the Gospel which they had received.
II Tim. 1:15.'</p>

<p>Hymenaeus (the second) and Philetus, who, having erred
concerning the truth, pretended that the resurrection of the
dead was past already; whereby they overthrew the faith of
some. II Tim. 2:17, 18.</p>

<p>Demas, who forsook Paul, having loved the world. II Tim.
4:10.</p>

<p>Alexander, the coppersmith, who did the apostle much evil,
on account of which the church of Christ is admonished to
beware of him. II Tim. 4:14,15.</p>

<p>Many others, who, though they bore the name of members of
the Christian church, did not stand by but forsook the oft
mentioned servant of God, when he was to answer before the
Emperor Nero in regard to the Evangelical doctrine; for which
reason their names did no longer belong among the pious. See
last mentioned chapter verse 16.</p>

<p>After these followed many who in the days of John went out
from the Church of Jesus Christ, and did the works of
antichrist; wherefore they were called antichrists, being
forerunners of the great antichrist who was to follow
afterwards. See I John 2:18, 19. Besides these who arose
already in the time of the apostles, and went out from the holy
congregation of God, many others, who can not all be mentioned,
followed in all ages and will follow to the last days.</p>

<p>Of this the apostles prophesied when their departure was
near at hand, and warned the believers of their coming.</p>

<p>When Paul knew and was fully assured through the revelation
of the Holy Ghost that all those among whom he had traveled
preaching the Gospel would see his face no more, he thus
addressed, on the island of Miletus, the elders of the church
of Ephesus, who had come to him: I know, beloved brethren, that
after my departing shall grievous wolves enter in among you,
not sparing the flock. Also of your own selves shall men arise,
speaking perverse things, to draw away disciples after them.
Therefore watch, and remember that by the space</p>

<p>of three years I ceased not to warn every one night and day
with tears. Acts 20:29-31.</p>

<p>Afterwards when he was in the city of Laodicea, in Phrygia
Pacatiana, he wrote in a certain letter to his beloved friend
Timothy, concerning the apostasy which should be through some
in the latter times, thus, "Now the Spirit speaketh expressly,
that in the latter times, some shall depart from the faith,
giving heed to seducing spirits, and doctrines of devils;
speaking lies in hypocrisy; having their conscience seared with
a hot iron; forbidding to marry, and commanding to abstain from
meats." I Tim. 4:1-3.</p>

</div><div id="47"> 

<p>Who these apostates were that, in many instances, have
forbidden marriage and meats it is unnecessary to point out,
since the truth of the matter is clear and manifest to almost
everyone.</p>

<p>But at the close of his life, when he was imprisoned at Rome
the second time, and had already received his sentence of
death, namely, to be executed with the sword, for the name of
the Lord, he once more renewed the foregoing to his friend and
spiritual son Timothy, in order that he might never forget it,
but also put the church, where he was a teacher, in remembrance
of it with these words, "This know also that in the last days
perilous times shall come. For men shall be lovers of their own
selves, covetous, boasters, proud, . . . having a form of
godliness, but denying the power thereof." II Tim. 3:1-5.</p>

<p>Continually, he adds this declaration for further
instruction, "The time will come when they" (namely, certain
members of the Christian church)"will not endure sound
doctrine; but after their own lusts shall heap to themselves
teachers, having itching ears; and they shall turn away their
ears from the truth, and shall be turned unto fables" (II Tim.
4:3, 4).</p>

<p>In like manner, Peter also, as his departure drew nigh,
expressly prophesied to the chosen strangers scattered abroad:
That, as there were, in times past, false prophets among the
people (Israel), there should also be false teachers among (or
out of) them, who should privily bring in pernicious heresies,
even denying the Lord that bought them. II Pet. 2:1.</p>

<p>It would require too much time to recount what also John
says on this subject, not only in his epistles, but especially
in his revelation; since he gives a description of the
condition of both the church of Christ and of antichrist, from
his time to the end of the world.</p>

<h2>OF THE EVIL SUCCESSION OF THE ROMAN CHURCH, CONSISTING ONLY IN THE SUCCESSION OF THE PERSONS, AND NOT OF THE DOCTRINE</h2> 

<p>Here is to be considered the great error of the Romanists,
when they without regarding the true succession of the doctrine
build on, and parade the succession of the persons, who either
from the beginning of the world, or from the time of the
apostles have existed throughout, as they pretend up to the
present time; surely a very insignificant matter!*</p>

<p>For, if they reckon from the beginning of the world, we have
shown, that Cain, who was a murderer, has had his successors as
well as Abel, who was slain for the sake of his faith** and
godliness.</p>

<br /><cite>*"Trust ye not in lying words," saith the
Lord,"saying, The temple of the Lord, The temple of the Lord,
The temple of the Lord, are these" (Jer. 7:4).</cite> 

<br /><cite>*"By faith Abel offered unto God a more
excellent sacrifice than Cain, by which he obtained witness
that he was righteous, God testifying of his gifts: and he
being dead yet speaketh" (Heb. 11:4). And also, if they reckon
from the time of the apostles, we have demonstrated that at
that time already there were many apostates, yea, adversaries
of the Christian religion and the true worship of God; and that
more have followed, according to the prophecies and predictions
which the holy apostles uttered and left to posterity.</cite> 

<p>Hence it follows, that neither the antiquity, nor the long
or great succession of persons, can assure the truth of any
religion or church, since the evil is as ancient as the good,
and the erring spirits and evildoers have had, and still have,
as great a succession as the true believers and good; unless
the antiquity, and the succession of persons be accompanied
with the divine truth and piety possessed by the upright
ancients in the beginning.</p>

<h2>OBJECTION OF THE PAPISTS, BY MEANS OF THREE PASSAGES</h2> 

<p>But, in order to maintain the aforementioned succession, the
Papists are accustomed to say, that they do not reckon the same
from the antiquity of some erring spirits who were before, in,
or after the time of the apostles; but from the church of
Christ itself, and from Peter, whom they styled the prince of
the apostles, upon whom Christ Himself, as they asserted,
wished to build His church. <i>Bell. lib.</i> I. <i>de pont
Rom. cap. 10. Quansuy ex.</i></p>

<p>To this they add as a second argument, that to him and no
other, were given, by Christ, the keys of heaven, to open or to
close the same according to his pleasure.</p>

<p>And, thirdly, that the Lord thrice commanded him-more than
the other apostles-to feed His flock, that is, His church.</p>

<p>Moreover, that he occupied the Roman throne, and that the
popes succeeded him therein.</p>

<p>To prove this supremacy of Peter, and, consequently, the
succession of the popes in his place, they have, for a long
time already, misused three passages of holy Scripture, namely
Matt. 16:18, 19; and John 21:15-17; to which we will reply in
the following.</p>

<h2>REPLY TO THE FIRST PASSAGE</h2> 

<p>Matt. 16:18, the Lord says, "Upon this rock I will build my
church."</p>

<p>The error of the Romanists consists in this, that they
misinterpret the word <i>petra,</i> as though thereby was meant
the apostle Peter; but this is a great and palpable error. For
the Lord there plainly distinguishes between the name
<i>Petros</i> (Peter) and the word <i>petra</i> (rock); saying
immediately before, "Thou art <i>Peter,"</i> but afterwards, "and
upon this <i>rock;"</i> upon which follows, "I will build my
church;" so that the Lord does not promise there, to build His
church upon <i>Peter,</i> but upon the <i>rock;</i> which he
plainly mentions.</p>

<p>Now it will depend upon the true meaninb who and what is to
be understood by this rock. Some maintain the first mentioned
meaning, which</p>

</div><div id="48"> 

<p>we have refuted just now, namely, that Peter himself is
meant thereby; for which purpose they misapply the passage John
1:42, where this apostle is called <i>Cephas,*</i> which, in
their opinion, signifies a foundation stone; but this is also
an error.</p>

<p>It is true that, according to the explanation of
orientalists, those versed in oriental languages, by this word
there is to be understood a stone; but what kind of a stone?
Not a foundation stone, but a piece, corner, or chip of a
stone, upon which no building could ever be founded. The word
Cephas, they say, is derived from the Hebrew word <i>Keph,</i>
which with them means a corner or edge of a stone; while, on
the other hand, the rocks or foundation stones are designated
by the.name Sela or Zur ** according to Deut. 32:13. Thus Peter
is indeed called a stone in holy Scripture, yet not a
foundation stone, but only such a one as is generally built
upon a foundation. Christ is properly the foundation stone, as
Peter himself declares, when he calls Christ the living stone,
disallowed indeed of men, but chosen of God, and precious (I
Pet. 2:4); whereupon he adduces the words of the Prophet Isaiah
saying, "Wherefore also it is contained in the Scripture,
Behold, I lay in Sion a chief corner stone, elect, precious:
and he that believeth on him" (that is built, upon him through
faith)"shall not be confounded." I Pet. 2:6 from Isa. 28:16.
Therefore he admonishes the believers, to build themselves, as
living stones, to a spiritual house, upon the foundation which
is laid-Christ. Verse 5.</p>

<p>Paul confirms this, when he says, "Other foundation can no
man lay than that is laid, which is Jesus Christ" (I Cor.
3:11). In another place he calls Him the foundation of the
apostles and prophets, etc. (namely, upon whom the apostles and
pr phets themselves were built up, and upon whom they, through
their doctrine, built up others also.); for he adds, "In whom
all the building fitly framed together groweth unto a holy
temple in the Lord: in whom ye also are builded together for a
habitation of God through the Spirit" (Eph. 2:20-22) .</p>

<p>It is not inconsistent with this, that the twelve apostles,
of whom Peter was one, are called twelve foundation stones, ***
upon which, as John says, the city of God, that descended from
heaven, was built. Rev. 21:14. For, even if it were admitted
that by</p>

<br /><cite>* And he (Andrew) brought him (Simon Peter) to
Jesus. And when Jesus beheld him, he said, Thou art Simon the
son of Jona: thou stu be called Cephas, which is by
interpretation, A stone. John 1:42.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* He made him ride on the high places of the
earth, that he might eat the increase of the fields: and he
made him to suck honey out of the"Sela" rock, and oil out of
the"Zur" flinty rock. Deut. 32:13.</cite> 

<br /><cite>** The wall of the city had twelve foundations,
and in them the names of the twelve apostles of the Lamb"
(Rev.21:14). In the first place it is questionable (even if it
be admitted that by this description of the city of God we are
to understand the church of God) whether thereby is meant the
church of God as it is here on earth, or the glorified church
of God, as it will be afterwards in heaven t for only the
former, and not he latter, is to be considered here. In the
second place, it is certain that the name"foundation stone" is
ascribed here not to Peter alone, but to all the twelve
apostles; hence he is here called a foundation not any more
than any of the others. he words, <i>city of God,</i> in this
place, there is to be understood the church of God here on
earth, this would only prove, that Peter, as well as the other
apostles, was one of the twelve foundation stones of the church
of Christ; which by no means confirms the proposed objection,
<i>that Peter alone is the foundation stone, or foundaition, of
the church.</i></cite> 

<p>Again, the word <i>"foundation stones"</i> here does not
signify the foundation itself, since, properly speaking, in
nature, the foundation, as the ground or bottom of a building,
is something different from the stones built upon it, which are
called foundation stones; for, upon the ground or bottom the
foundation stones are laid, and upon the foundation stones the
building; so that the ground of foundation must support both,
the foundation stones and the building. Thus, Christ is the
ground, bottom, or foundation of His church; the apostles,
through their doctrine, are the foundation stones; and. the
church is the building erected upon these foundation stones and
the foundation. It stands fast, therefore, that they err, who
make Peter the only foundation of the church of Christ, and
that, consequently the building which they erect thereon, is
erroneous and false *</p>

<h2>REPLY TO THE SECOND PASSAGE</h2> 

<p>The second passage is taken from Matt. 16:19, "And I will
give unto thee the keys of the kingdom of heaven: and
whatsoever thou shalt bind on earth shall be bound in heaven;
and whatsoever thou shalt loose on earth shall be loosed in
heaven."</p>

<p>But this does not in the least tend to prove that church
discipline or the power of expelling from, and readmitting unto
the church, was given, among the apostles, to Peter alone, and
to no other of the twelve; for in verse 13 it is written, "When
Jesus came into the coasts of Cesarea Philippi, he asked his
disciples, saying, Whom do men say that I, the Son of man, am?"
Whereupon it is related, that Peter (in the name of all)
answered, "Thou art the Christ, the Son of the living God."</p>

<p>Then follows, verse 19, "I will give unto thee the keys,"
etc., which promise, though addressed specially to Peter,
extended to all the apostles in general, since the Lord did not
ask Peter alone; but the whole of them collectively; upon
which, when he (Peter) had answered in the name of all,
followed the above mentioned promise.</p>

<p>This is explained still further by the holy evangelist John,
who says, chap. 20:19, 22, 23, that Christ, after His
resurrection, standing in the midst of His disciples, breathed
on them all, and said, "Receive ye the Holy Ghost," adding, "Whosesoever sins ye remit, they are remitted unto them; and
whosesoever sins ye retain, they are retained;" which words are
of equal impor-</p>

<br /><cite>* James, Cephas" (or Peter),"and John, who
seemed to be pillars," etc. Gal. 2:9. Here James is mentioned
before Cephas (or Peter). Again, John and James are called
pillars as well as Cephas (or Peter), in order to show that the
worthiness or the ministry of one was not more than that of the
other, and that they, without distinction, were all equal
therein.</cite> 

</div><div id="49"> 

<p>tance with those just quoted from Matthew, concerning the
giving of the keys.</p>

<p>Moreover, that the church also has received this power, is
expressed in words not obscure at all in Matt. 18:17, 18: If he
(the sinner) neglect to hear ,the church, let him be unto thee
as a heathen man and a publican. Verily I say unto you,
whatsoever ye (understand, according to the sentence of the
church, which is here spoken of) shall bind on earth shall be
bound in heaven; and whatsoever ye shall loose on earth shall
be loosed in heaven."</p>

<p>Who doubts that these are the express words which were
previously addressed to Peter, but, of course, are intended for
all the apostles, and here for the whole church?</p>

<p>We see that the Corinthian church, at the time of Paul,
possessed the right of expelling and readmitting, called
binding and loosing; for, touching the expulsion of the sinner,
it was said to them, "Purge out therefore the old leaven" (namely, the obstinate
sinner), etc. I Cor. 5:7. Again, "Put away from among yourselves
that wicked person." Verse 13.</p>

<p>Concerning the readmittance of the one who manifested
penitence, they are commanded, "Sufficient to such a man
(namely, who repents of his sins) is this punishment (that is,
the expulsion from the church) which was inflicted of many. So
that contrariwise ye ought rather to forgive him, and comfort
him, lest perhaps such a one should be swallowed up with
overmuch sorrow" (II Cor. 2:6,7).</p>

<p>Besides, that this power of binding and loosing was not
given to Peter alone, but to all the apostles, and also to the
church, it is entirely different in its nature from that of
which the pope of Rome as the imaginary successor of Peter
boasts. For the power of which Christ spoke, must be limited by
the rule of His Word, Matt. 7:24, 26; Gal. 1:6-8; while on the
contrary the power of which the pope boasts is unlimited, has
no rule, and extends as far as his pleasure. <i>Bald. in</i>
cap. <i>Eccles. Also, dirt. 40. cap. S. Papae, etc.</i></p>

<p>It follows then, that to the pope is attributed wrongfully a
power which was not given to Peter himself; moreover, that the
power which was given him, was common to all the apostles, and
also to the church.</p>

<h2>REPLY TO THE THIRD PASSAGE</h2> 

<p>The third passage (or argument) is taken from John 21:15-17,
where-the Lord asked Peter three times whether he loved Him,
and Peter answered each time, "Yea, Lord, I love thee;" to which
the Lord replied, three times, "Feed my lambs;""Watch my sheep,"
etc.</p>

<p>Some among the papists, in order to maintain the supremacy
of Peter and, consequently, that of the popes of Rome, have so
strained these words, that a certain celebrated author among
them did not hesitate to write, <i>that Peter is here appointed
a ruler, watchman, and pastor, not only over the</i> <i>church,
but over the apostles themselves. Bell. lib. 1. de Pont. Rom.
cap.</i> 14 &amp; 15. 16. <i>Second S. belt. etc.</i></p>

<p>But herein they do violence to the text, since various
arguments from the holy Scriptures overthrow this view. For, in
the first place, it is certain, that at that time Peter had
greatly and grievously gone astray, more than any of the other
apostles; since he, contrary to warning and his own solemn
promise, had so faithlessly denied, yea, entirely forsaken, the
Lord; hence, there is no probability that the Lord exalted him
above all the others, and appointed him ruler over them; which
would be altogether incompatible with the justice of Christ,
and the nature of the case.</p>

<p>In the second place it would not accord with what the Lord
had taught His apostles in general, on a previous occasion,
when strife had arisen among them, as to which of them, after
His departure, should be the greatest; saying, "The kings of the
Gentiles exercise lordship over them; and they that exercise
authority upon them are called benefactors. But ye shall not be
so: but he that is greatest among you, let him be as the
youngest; and he that is chief, as he that doth serve" (Luke
22:25, 26) . Again, "Neither be ye called masters</p>

<p>for one is your Master, even Christ" (Matt. 23:8, 10).</p>

<p>In the third place, if we examine the proposed argument, we
shall find, that neither the threefold question of the Lord:
<i>Lovest thou me?</i> nor His threefold injunction, "Feed,
<i>or watch, my lambs, and sheep,"</i> was directed to Peter
any more than to the other apostles.</p>

<p>For, as regards the question, <i>Lovest thou me?</i> what
does it signify more than that Peter should examine himself,
<i>whether he did love Christ?</i> Very well. What, then, had
Peter more than any of the other apostles? or than Paul
afterwards had? who said, "For I am persuaded, that neither
death nor life, nor angels, nor principalities, nor powers, nor
things present, nor things to come, nor height, nor depth, nor
any other creature, shall be able to separate us from the love
of God, which is in Christ Jesus our Lord" (Rom. 8:38, 3,9).
Again, "The love of Christ constraineth us;" etc. II Cor. 5:14.
Yea, every Christian in particular, and all in general, are
bound to this love, which is so necessary, that it is
written, "If any man love not the Lord Jesus Christ, let him be
Anathema, Maranatha" (I Cor. 16:22) .</p>

<p>Concerning the injunction, Watch, or <i>feed, my lambs and
sheep,</i> this is also enjoined upon all true teachers."Take
heed therefore," says Paul to the elders of the church at
Ephesus,"unto yourselves, and to all the flock, over which the
Holy Ghost hath made you overseers, to feed the church of God,
which he hath purchased with his own blood" (Acts 20:28) .</p>

<p>Peter, moreover, has, in this respect, not placed himself
above, but beside his fellow ministers, when he, exhorting them
says, "The elders which</p>

</div><div id="50"> 

<p>are among you I exhort, which am also an elder, and a
witness of the sufferings of Christ . . . Feed the flock of God
which is among you," etc. (I Pet. 5:1, 2).</p>

<p>This is further confirmed by the fact, that the Lord did not
command Peter only, but all the apostles in general, to go into
all the world, to preach and baptize the believers. Matt.
28:18-20; Mark 16:15,16.</p>

<p>Again, He said to them all, "Ye shall be witnesses unto me
both in Jerusalem, and in all Judea, and in Samaria, and unto
the uttermost parts of the earth" (Acts 1:8).</p>

<p>It follows therefore, that in the matter of watching over,
.and feeding, the sheep of Christ, that is, in preaching the
holy Gospel, and taking care of the church of Christ, Peter
possessed no more authority, power, and distinction than the
other apostles and apostolic teachers.</p>

<p>It now remains to give a solution, why the Lord thrice asked
Peter alone, and none of the others, whether he loved Him, and
thrice commanded him to feed His sheep.</p>

<p>To this we reply: since Peter only a short time before had
thrice forsaken the Lord, it was not more than right, that he
should also confess thrice that he loved Him whom he had
forsaken; and that, therefore, this question should be put to
him three times.</p>

<p>Besides, since Peter, by his denial had entirely abandoned,
or, at least, had become totally unworthy of his office of
teaching and feeding the church of Christ, none of the other
apostles would, under any consideration, have recognized or
received him therein; hence it was necessary, that the Lord
Himself should earnestly, yea thrice, charge him with it, so
that no one might come to doubt the worthiness of his person
(since he was now converted), or the validity of his
office.</p>

<p>Thence follows again the absurdity of those who make the
matter in question say more than the Lord Himself has done:
namely, that Peter hereby was not reinstated into his office,
which he had abandoned; but that he was appointed head of the
whole church, yea, even over all the other apostles; as can be
seen in <i>lib. 1. de pont. Rom. cap. 11. Bellorm.</i></p>

<h2>THE GROUNDLESSNESS [OF THE ALLEGATIONS] OF THOSE WHO ARE ACCUSTOMED TO DEDUCE THE ROMAN SUCCESSION FROM PETER THE HOLY APOSTLE, AND WHEREIN THIS CONSISTS</h2> 

<p>Besides that the three proposed passages are of no use to
the papists in proving the supremacy of Peter over the other
apostles and the whole Christian church, there follow various
reasons and circumstances which show clearly, that the
succession of the popes, which they would deduce from Peter,
cannot stand, but is unfounded and untrue.</p>

<p>For, to come to the point, it cannot be shown, that Peter
was ever at Rome, (where the seat of the pope is placed),
except at the close of his life, and then he was not received
as pope, but was put to death as a martyr, with Paul, his
fellow apostle, for the testimony of Jesus Christ, as we have
circumstantially shown in the History of the Holy Martyrs,of
the year 69 A. D. Also, <i>Egesic;p. Hist. van de
verstoring Jerusalem, 3. Bock,</i> 2 cap. Also, W. <i>Band.
Apopth.</i> Christian, lib. I. ex Hieron. <i>de vitis
illustribus. Johan. Strac. in festo Johan. Evang, etc.</i></p>

<p>Eusebius quotes from Dionysius, a teacher of the church at
Corinth, concerning the coming of Paul and Peter to Rome, as
also concerning their preaching, which was the cause of their
death, these words: They (namely Paul and Peter) were both
together in our congregation at Corinth, teaching (from) there
(on) throughout all Italy; they taught also in this city
(namely, Rome, of which he had first spoken); where they both
were crowned martyrs at the same time. <i>Euseb. Pamph. Chron.
Eccl. Edition of 1,588 lib.</i> 2. <i>cap. z,5.</i></p>

<p>He speaks of Peter's coming to, and preaching at, Rome, even
as if having taken place at the close of his life; and although
he puts Paul's coming and preaching in the same time, Paul's
coming to this city, nevertheless, happened much earlier than
the coming of Peter, which took place shortly before their
death; in which time both together preached the holy Gospel in
that city.</p>

<p>That Paul was there much earlier and longer, appears from
all the circumstances of the Acts of the apostles; for while
Peter was preaching at Cesarea, Antioch, Jerusalem, and in
other places, Paul was brought to Rome, and, having arrived
there,"dwelt two whole years in his own hired house, and
received all that came in unto him, preaching the kingdom of
God, and teaching those things which concern the Lord Jesus
Christ, with all confidence, no man forbidding him." Here the
account of the Acts of the Apostles ends, without mentioning
anything further of Peter. See Acts 28:30, 31.</p>

<h2>VARIOUS ARGUMENTS FROM THE HOLY SCRIP TURES, SHOWING THAT PETER WAS NOT AT ROME DURING THE TIME PAUL WAS THERE, EXCEPT (AS HAS BEEN EX PLAINED ABOVE) AT THE CLOSE OF HIS LIFE</h2> 

<p>In this demonstration we shall forego the method employed by
Sebastian Frank, Gysius, and others, who have written
syllogistically upon this subject, and shall confine ourselves
solely to the express testimony of (or, at least, plain
inferences from) Holy Scripture, upon which we propose to found
our arguments.</p>

<p><i>Reason.</i> First Argument.-When Paul drew near the city
of Rome, where he was to be arraigned before Cesar, the
brethren* came out of the city</p>

<br /><cite>* By which of the other apostles these brethren
at Rome were converted, is not mentioned in the text; but it
may have been that they were converted on the day of Pentecost
at erusalem, for at that time strangers of Rome were there.
Acts 2:10.</cite> 

</div><div id="51"> 

<p>to meet him, as far as Appii Forum, and the Three Taverns,
whom, when Paul saw, he took courage. Acts 28:15: But among
these Peter is not once mentioned, which would undoubtedly have
been the case, had he been with them and occupied the episcopal
throne at that place, as is pretended.</p>

<p><i>Second Argument</i>.-When it came to pass, that Paul was
to give an account before the emperor for the first time, he
was forsaken by all, and no man stood with him, so that he
complained of it to Timothy. II Tim. 4:16, Now, if Peter had
been at Rome; he certainly would not have forsaken Paul, whom
he was wont to call his beloved brother, II Pet. 3:15; but
would have stood by him with counsel and actual assistance,
according to his ability. This, however, did not happen; which
clearly shows that <i>he was</i> not there at that time; unless
some one might conclude, that he, who before had forsaken his
Lord and Saviour (which was a matter of much consequence), now
probably also forsook Paul, who was inferior.</p>

<p>To this may serve as reply: That Peter, at the time he
forsook Christ, was not filled with the gift of the Holy Ghost,
which was not poured upon the apostles until after Christ's
ascension, Acts 2:1-3; hence he could easily come to this fall;
but now, being filled with the Holy Ghost,* it was quite
otherwise, so much so, that he and his fellow apostles feared
no suffering, not even death itself. Compare Acts 4:19-21 with
5:40-42 and 12:3, 4. Also I Pet. 3:14 and 4:16.</p>

<p>Moreover, in Paul's complaint to Timothy not a word is
mentioned as to Peter having forsaken him; which, had it
happened, would certainly, as a notable matter, not have been
passed over in silence; more especially, as he mentions some of
those who forsook him, by name, as, Demas, Alexander the
coppersmith, etc.</p>

<p><i>Third Argument</i>.-When Paul was confined in prison at
Rome, and bound in chains, he commended Onesiphorus, because he
had visited him, and was not ashamed of his chain; without
mentioning anything about others, saying, "The Lord give mercy
unto the house of Onesiphorus; for he oft refreshed me, and was
not ashamed of my chain" (II Tim. 1:16) .</p>

<p>But why does he not commend Peter as having visited him in
his bonds? or, if Peter was there and did not do so, but was
ashamed of his chain, why does he not complain, that so great a
man, who ought to have been a leader unto others, was so
negligent therein?</p>

<p>Doubtless, if Peter had been in the city at that time, and
visited, or not visited, him in prison, Paul would not have
passed it over in utter silence, without commending or
complaining of it.</p>

<p><i>Fourth Argument-When</i> many had departed from Paul,
while he was in prison, he made mention of one who had remained
by, or with him, namely, in the city of Rome. He calls him
Luke,</p>

<br /><cite>* Howbeit when He, the Spirit of truth, is come,
He will guide you into all truth. John 16:13. and says: Only
Luke is with (or by) me. II Tim. 4:11. It follows, therefore,
that at the time when Paul wrote this, Peter was not at Rome,
or it could not have been that only Luke was with him. ,</cite> 

<p><i>Fifth Argument.-A little</i> further on from the above
mentioned words, Paul requests of Timothy, that when he, came
to him, he should bring Mark with him, since the same would be
very profitable to him for his ministry, saying: Take Mark, and
bring him with thee (when thou comest); for he is profitable to
me for the ministry. II Tim. 4:11.</p>

<p>Now, if Peter was in Rome at that time, why was Paul under
the necessity of sending for Mark for the ministry? or, if he
was not there, why did he not send for Peter? Certainly, if he
had sent for him, he would, unless prevented by some important
cause, not have refused to come: and then it could be
concluded, that <i>Peter z</i>ws <i>there a considerable
time,</i> since, as we find, they both died considerable time
afterwards.</p>

<p>But it does not appear that Paul sent for him; hence, it
cannot be concluded, that he came in answer to his summons; and
even if he had come at that time, his stay there could not have
lasted several years, much less twenty-five years, as the
papists say, since death overtook him as well as Paul, as has
been shown in its proper place. The preparation, however, of
this whole argument is unnecessary and superfluous.</p>

<p><i>Sixth Argument.-Paul wrote</i> various epistles from his
prison at Rome to the believers; as to the Galatians,
Ephesians, Philippians, Colossians, to Timothy, Philemon, etc.,
in which he puts various salutations from believers of the
church at Rome, as also, in the beginning of the same makes
mention sometimes of his fellow laborers; but he never mentions
Peter. We will show here the manner in which this is done.</p>

<p>In the beginning of the epistle to the Philippians he writes
these words: Paul and Timotheus, the servants of Jesus Christ.
Now, why does he not add here: and Simon Peter?</p>

<p>Nearly in the same manner he commences the epistle to the
Colossians, saying;"Paul, an apostle of Jesus Christ by the
will of God, and Timotheus, our brother." Why does he not add:
and Peter, the chief apostle?</p>

<p>In concluding these epistles he adds the salutations of the
saints who were with him. To the Philippians he writes, "All the
saints salute you</p>

<p>. . chiefly they that are of Caesar's household" (Phil.
4:21, 22) . To the Colossians he addresses these
words, "Epaphras, who is one of you, a servant of Christ,
saluteth you" (Col: 4:12).. Also: Luke, the physician, greets
you. Verse 14.</p>

<p>Peter is not mentioned here at all, which, certainly, had he
been there, would have been highly necessary.</p>

<p>This same manner he followed in all the other epistles which
he wrote from Rome. To Timothy he says, "Eubulus greeteth thee,
and Pudens, and Linus, and Claudia". (II Tim. 4:21).</p>

</div><div id="51 50029 words so far"> 

<p>To Philemon, "There salute thee Epaphras . . . Marcus,
Aristarchus" (Phil. 23, 24) .</p>

<p>There might be much said upon this subject, but it would all
amount to this: that it would be a strange thing, if Peter was
at Rome, when Paul wrote his epistles from the Roman prison,
that the latter did never mention in these epistles a
salutation from Peter (which, as has been shown, he did not);
seeing he mentions salutations from different leaders and
members of the Roman church, whom he calls by name: hence it is
quite reasonable to conclude, that Peter was not there during
that time.</p>

<p>Besides the six arguments mentioned, proving that during the
time Paul was imprisoned under Nero, Peter was not at Rome, as
far as the testimony of Holy Scriptures go in regard to this,
there follow various circumstances showing (by like virtue of
Holy Scripture), that <i>also during the time</i> Paul was
<i>out of</i> prison, Peter was not to <i>be found</i> in this
<i>city.</i></p>

<p><i>First Circumstance</i>.-Here is to be considered, why
Paul wrote an epistle to the Roman church, as well for the
confirmation of the Christian faith, as for stirring up in the
moral virtues (which epistle is still in existence), if Peter
was there at that time, and had the charge of said church? or,
if it was necessary for important reasons, that he should write
to them, why he did not send this epistle to Peter as their
leader, like he did to Timothy, the teacher of the Ephesian
church; and to Titus, the teacher of the church in the Island
of Crete?</p>

<p>Or, at least, if we look at the contents of .this epistle,
we may well consider, why he did not address a salutation to
him, or once mention him by name? seeing he filled nearly a
whole chapter with the names of those whom he salutes at Rome:
as, Aquila with his wife Priscilla, Epenetus and Mary, together
with Andronicus, Junia, Amplias, Urbanus, Apelles, Herodion,
those of the household of Narcissus (the women), Tryphena and
Tryphosa, Persis, Rufus, Asyncritus, Phlegon, Hermas, Patrobas,
Philologus, Nereus, etc., Rom. 16 throughout; without
mentioning in any way whatever the person or name of Peter;
from which there may be concluded again with good reason, that
which has been concluded before from the account of the
salutations which Paul wrote while in prison at Rome, namely,
that <i>Peter was</i> not in this city at that time</p>

<p><i>Second Circumstance. -When</i> it afterwards happened
that Paul, having traveled through Arabia and the country of
Damascus, returned after three years, with a particular desire
to see Peter; he did not seek him at Rome, but at Jerusalem;
where, when he had found him, he abode with him fifteen days:
and then departed again into the regions of Syria and Cilicia.
Gal. 1:17-21.</p>

<p><i>Third Circumstance. - When</i> fourteen more years had
elapsed, namely, those spent by Paul in his Syrian and Cilician
journey, where was Peter to be found? Certainly not at Rome,
but at Anti och; for there Paul came to him, and rebuked him,
because he had eaten with the Gentiles in the presence of the
Jews. Compare Gal. 2:1 with verses 11,12.</p>

<p><i>Fourth</i> Circumstance.-When some came down from Judea,
and troubled the brethren, saying that, unless they were
circumcised after the man ner of Moses, they could not be
saved; and Paul, Barnabas, and other pious men were sent to the
apostles .and elders, to consult about the matter; Peter as
well as the others to whom they were sent, was found at
Jerusalem. Acts 15:1-7.</p>

<p><i>Fifth Circumstance.-Gal. 2</i>:7, we read, that the
uncircumcision (that is, the Gentiles) was committed to Paul,
but the circumcision (that is, the Jews or the Jewish nation)
to Peter; also, verse 9, that Peter (there called Cephas)
together with James and John gave to Paul and Barnabas the
right hand and agreed, that these should go unto the heathen,
but they unto the circumcision (the Jews); namely, to preach
the Gospel unto them.</p>

<p>It is, therefore, a settled fact, that Peter was properly a
teacher of the Jews (after this agreement was made), and not of
the Gentiles. But if he had taught among the Romans, who were
Gentiles by nature, he would have gone altogether beyond his
engagement and promise; which certainly is not to be supposed
of so great and _ eminent a man as Peter was at that time.</p>

<p><i>Sixth Circumstance.-From the</i> two epistles of Peter,
especially from the words, I Pet. 1:1, it evidently appears,
that he preached to the strangers scattered throughout Pontus,
Galatia, Cappadocia, Asia, and Bithynia (namely those who were
scattered there from the twelve tribes of Israel) according to
the statement of James, chap. 1:1; for which preaching, since
these countries are very far, some even a hundred and more
leagues apart, several years were required, in order to travel
through them; during which time Peter apparently could not be
there and at Rome at once; this is incontrovertible.</p>

<p><i>Seventh Circumstance.-At the</i> end of the first epistle
of Peter, namely I Pet. 5:13, are these words, "The church that
is at Babylon, elected . . . saluteth you."</p>

<p>How could Peter send a salutation from the church at
Babylon, unless he was with it in Babylon at that time? But if
he was in Babylon, he was not at Rome, unless he had two
bodies; of which we do not read anything, nor have we any
reason to believe it.</p>

<p><i>Eighth Circumstance</i>.-Those who hold that Peter was
bishop at Rome, make no distinction between the words apostle,
or messenger, and <i>bishop,</i> or overseer; yet there always
has been a marked difference between the office of an apostle
and that of a bishop.</p>

<p>The office of an apostle was to travel from one country to
another, yea, through the whole world, and preach the Gospel to
those who had not yet heard it; without being bound to any
particular</p>

</div><div id="53"> 

<p>place or church, as appears from Matt. 28:19; Mark
16:15.</p>

<p>On the other hand, the office of a bishop or overseer was to
watch over, care for, feed and govern, as a shepherd his flock,
a particular church, unto which the Gospel had been already
preached, and which had accepted faith and the sign of holy
baptism. Compare Acts 20:28 with I Tim. 3:1-5; Tit. 1:5-7.</p>

<p>Now, it is a fact, that properly not the latter, but the
former office was enjoined upon Peter, for he gives himself the
first mentioned nameapostle (see I Pet. 1:1 and II Pet. 1:1);
for which purpose Christ Himself had chosen him, Luke 6:13, 14,
and sent him out, as can plainly be seen in the last chapter of
Matthew and of Mark.</p>

<p>How could it be then, that Peter sat as bishop of the church
in the city of Rome? and, what is still more-for a considerable
number of years! unless it be said that Peter abandoned his
charge, and accepted another office and ministry than the one
to which he was called; which it would be difficult to prove,
since nothing is mentioned of it in Holy Writ.</p>

<p><i>Further Remarks on the foregoing circumstances.-If
one</i> should confine himself solely to the testimony of the
holy Scriptures, not accepting anything else as worthy of
belief, it could in no wise be shown that Peter was ever at
Rome; but, since the holy Scriptures do not relate all that has
happened, the testimony of some accepted authors of that time
may be recognized as credible, as far as their testimony is not
contrary to what is expressed in holy Scripture.</p>

<p>We have shown from the apostolic writings, that during the
time Paul wrote his epistles in the prison at Rome, and also
during the whole period that he (Peter) was preaching in
foreign countries, Peter was not in Rome, but in Jerusalem,
Antioch, Pontus, Galatia, Cappadocia, and in other places where
the Jews were scattered. This we have plainly shown, first by
six arguments, and then by eight circumstances, derived from
the holy Scriptures. But as to where Peter was, or how he died,
after Paul wrote his last epistle from Rome, the Scriptures are
silent.</p>

<p>Hence the testimony of those writers whom we have just
mentioned cannot well be contradicted; who maintain, that Peter
shortly before his death came to Rome, and there laid down his
life for the doctrine of the Evangelical truth; without
mentioning anything there about his bishopric, much less,
popedom.</p>

<h2>DISCORDANCE OF PAPISTIC WRITERS. 1. WHETHER PETER WAS AT ROME. 2. HOW LONG HE WAS BISHOP THERE. 3. WHO FOLLOWED HIM</h2> 

<p>The common tenet of the papists is, that Peter sat as the
chief bishop upon the Roman throne; yet the authors whom they
adduce for this purpose greatly differ. For, as respects his
arrival in that city, some fix it in the year 41 after Christ;
others in the beginning of the reign of the Emperor Claudius;
others in the second year of this same Claudius; others in the
fourth year; others in the beginning of the reign of Nero;
others in the fourteenth year after Paul's conversion, etc., as
it is noted in Irenaeus, Orosius, Damasus, Hornantius, Th.
Aquinus, The Lives of the Saints, etc.</p>

<p>Concerning the length of time he was bishop, there is not
less disagreement; as also in regard to how long he was absent
from his bishopric sojourning in other places. Cortesius writes
of eighteen years, Onuphrius of seven years; but the general
opinion among them is, that he sat twentyfive years upon the
chair governing their church; although some flatly oppose it.
See the last mentioned three authors.</p>

<p>Touching the person who succeeded him in his bishopric,
there is much confusion and uncertainty in what is said
concerning this subject. Some write that Clemens succeeded
Peter; as Septimus Florens Tert.; others, that Linus followed
him; as Irenaeus, Eusebius, Epiphan., etc., <i>De Praes 32 r.
Contr.</i> lov.; others, that Linus discharged Peter's office
two years before death of the latter; as Damasus, etc.; others,
that Peter ordered that Clemens should succeed after the death
of Linus; <i>In Pontific. Petr. etc., Clem. in Epist. ad
Jacobum, etc.;</i> others, that the chair of Peter was vacant
while Linus and Cletus lived, Clemens, who was ordained by
Peter as his successor, not being willing, as they say, to
occupy the chair in their lifetime; which is testified to by
Bellarminus; others that Linus occupied the chair eleven years
after Peter's death; see Eusebius; others, that Linus died
before Peter, and consequently was not his successor in the
bishopric; see Turrianus, Sophronius, etc.; others, that
Anacletus succeeded Peter, and Clemens, Anacletus. See
<i>Homil. de Agon. Pet. and Paul. In Chron, in Anno Clem.;</i>
others, finally, that Peter and Linus were bishops
simultaneously in the city of Rome; yet so, that Peter was the
superior, and Linus, the inferior bishop. See Ruffilnus,
Sabellicus, Turrianus, In vita Petri.</p>

<h2>OF THE RISE OF THE POPES AFTER THE YEAR 606, AS ALSO OF THE INTERRUPTION OF THE SUCCESSION OF THE SAME</h2> 

<p>Besides, that in the first three centuries after the death
of the apostles, nothing was known in the Roman church, as
regards rulers of the same, but common bishops or overseers,
until the time of Constantine the Great, and from that time on
to the year 600, only archbishops and patriarchs, but no popes,
till after the year 606, when, by the power of the Emperor
Phocas, the Roman Bishop Boniface III was declared and
established the general head and supreme ruler of the whole
church; the succession also of the following popes was
interrupted by many important occurrences, with respect to the
manner of the papal election as well as</p>

</div><div id="54"> 

<p>to the doctrine and the life of the popes themselves, as
also with regard to various circumstances pertaining to these
matters. Of this an account shall presently be given.</p>

<p>NOTE.-Besides what we have mentioned in our account of holy
baptism, for the year 606, of the rise and establishment of the
Roman pope, there is also found, concerning the cause of the
same (in the <i>Chronijk van den Ondergang der Tyrannen,</i>
edition of 1617, book VII, page 211, col. 2), this annotation:
When the patriarch at Constantinople reproved the Emperor
Phocas for the shameful murder he had committed, or would not
consent to, or remit, it, while the bishop of Rome winked at,
or excused this wicked deed, the Emperor Phocas, in his
displeasure, deprived the church of Constantinople of the
title, <i>Head of Christendom,</i> and, at the request of
Boniface III, conferred it upon the Roman church; which was
done amidst great contentions, for the eastern churches could
not well consent to it, that the <i>see</i> of Rome should be
considered by everybody, and everywhere, as the head and the
supreme (of the) church. Compare this with <i>Platinae Reg.
Pap. fol.</i> 123; <i>Fase. Temp, fol.</i> 122; <i>Pol. Virgil,
lib. c. cap. ro; Hist. Georg. lib. c;; Conrad.
Oelutar. fol. rg; Tract, called, Ouden en Nieuwen Godt. lib. r;
M. Zanchij Tract. Pap. fol.</i> c <i>Zeg. Chron. Rom.
Pap.</i> fol.r32.</p>

 

<h1>OF THE ELECTION OF THE POPE; AND OF SUCH AS HAVE USURPED THE CHAIR</h1>

<p>In the introduction to the <i>Martyr's Mirror</i> (edition
of 1631, fol. 25, 26, 27) mention is made from Cardinal
Baronius (we have looked into his history, and found it to be
so at the place referred to), of various popes who ran of
themselves, without lawful! election or mission; and also of
some who usurped the chair, without the consent of the church,
merely by the power of princes and potentates.</p>

<p>Among the popes who, without lawful election or mission, ran
of themselves, are numbered Stephen VI, Christopher, and
Sergius III, with whom it was as follows</p>

<p>Stephen VI expelled Boniface VI by force from the Roman see,
after the death of Formosus; and afterwards committed an
abominable deed on the dead body of said Formosus, who was
counted a lawful and good pope; which deed the Cardinal C.
Baronius describes from Luytprandus and others as follows, "In this same year was perpetrated the great wickedness
which Luytprandus and others relate, but incorrectly by
Sergius; since the acts of the aforementioned Synod under Pope
John IX, to which doubtless more credence is to be given,
impute it to the then existing pope, Stephen IX.</p>

<p>He caused the dead body of Formosus to be exhumed, and
placed it on the pope's throne, dressed in all his papal robes;
whereupon he upbraided Formosus, as though he were alive, that
he, hrough great ambition, had come from the chair of Porto
into that of Rome; anathematized him on this account, had the
dead body stripped of all the robes, as also the three fingers
with which Formosus according to custom used to ordain, cut off
from the same, and thus thrown into the Tiber. Besides this he
deposed all those who had been ordained by Formosus, and
reordained them; all of which he did from pure madness." See C.
<i>Baron. histor. Eccl. Anno 897. num.</i> 1. 2.</p>

<p>After this the same Baronius relates of Christophorus, who
also thrust himself into the papal chair, the following:, "Further, in the following year of Christ . . in the tenth
indiction,* Pope Benedict IV died, and was buried in St.
Peter's church. In his place succeeded Leo, the fifth of this
name, a native of Ardea, who held the chair only forty days,
being expelled and imprisoned after that by Christophorus, who
himself occupied the chair after him." <i>Baron Ann. gob. 907.
num.</i> 2.</p>

<p>The aforementioned Christophorus, who had expelled his
predecessor, Leo V, from the chair, and taken possession of it
himself, was, in his turn, robbed of the occupancy of the chair
by another, called Sergius III, who was ambitious of the same
dominion; which Sergius, although he attained to the papal
dignity, without being elected or called, yea, more than that,
was, according to the testimony of the papists themselves,
fearfully tyrannical and unchaste, is nevertheless recorded
with the aforementioned upon the Register of the legitimate
popes of Rome. See <i>Baron. Ann. 907. num.</i> 2., <i>Ann.
9o8. num.</i> 3.</p>

<p>In the midst of this account this papistic writer declares,
<i>that these were the dreadful times when every
self-constituted pope immediately nullified that which his
predecessor had made. Ann. 9o8. num.</i> 2.</p>

<p>Confirmatory of this matter is also that which is adduced in
the <i>"Chronijk van den Ondergang,"</i> edition 1617, for the
year 891, page 315. col. 1, 2. from the tract of <i>"Den
Onpartijdigen Rechter."</i></p>

<p>If one will but consider, says this writer, the spiritual or
ecclesiastical perfidiousness and rebelliousness of the popes,
he will find in ancient history, that the Roman popes have at
all times quarreled and contended with one another for the
papal chair.</p>

<p>Thus John XXIV, having come to Bononia with many soldiers,
threatened all the cardinals severely, if they would elect a
pope who would not please him. When many had been nominated to
him, and he would assent to none of them, he was finally
requested to state whom he would elect thereto. He
replied, "Give me Peter's robe, and I shall deliver it to the
future pope." But, when that was done, he put the robe upon his
own shoulders, saying, "I am the pope." And though this greatly
dis-</p>

<br /><cite>* A cycle of fifteen years, instituted by
Constantine the Great, in connection with the payment of
tribute, and afterwards made a substitute for Olympiads in
reckoning time. It was much used in the ecclesiastical
chronology of the middle ages, and is reckoned from the year
313 as its origin.-Websters Dictionary.</cite> 

</div><div id="55"> 

<p>pleased the other cardinals, they were nevertheless
compelled to acquiesce in it.</p>

<p>In the same manner John XXII elected himself pope when the
election was committed to him. See 9th book of the above
mentioned chronicle, for the year'891, at the place there
referred to.</p>

<p>NOTE.-In addition to what has been stated in the body [of
this work] concerning the popes who exalted themselves to the
papal reign, it is also proper to give what may be read in the
<i>"Chronijk van den Ondergang der Tyrannen,"</i> for the year
537, where the popedom of Vigilius is thus spoken of, "This Pope
Vigilius was certainly impelled by the spirit of ambition; he
greatly aspired to the popedom, and wrongfully ascended the
papal chair, for he counseled the empress, how to expel Pope
Silverius. He engaged false witnesses, who said that Silverius
intended to betray the city of Rome secretly, and surrender it
to the Goths (of which we shall afterwards speak more fully);
therefore he was deposed from the popedom by force, and
relegated into misery; and thus Vigilius six days afterwards
became pope. The Empress Theodora desired him to reinstate
Anthenius at Constantinople, as he had promised to do; but
Vigilius refused, saying that one was not bound to keep a bad
promise against one's conscience." Compared with the account of
Platina, in his <i>"Panselijh Register," fol. iio. Also, Chron.
Fasci. Temp. fol.</i> 117.</p>

<h2>OF SOME WHO ATTAINED POSSESSION OF THE ROMAN CHAIR THROUGH SECULAR POWER AND OTHER UNGODLY MEANS</h2> 

<p>There is, moreover, mention made of another kind of popes,
who attained possession of the Roman chair, not properly
through themselves, inasmuch as they were too weak, but through
the power of princes and potentates, yea, even through the
Arians. Among these are particularly numbered the two popes
named, Felix, both of whom were exalted to papal dignity, and
put in their office by Arian Kings, who ruled Italy, and
consequently, also the city of Rome; the one by Constantius,*
the other by Theodoric, both of whom belonged to the Arian
sect. Cas. <i>Bar. Ann. 526.</i> mums<i>. 2.</i></p>

<p>But quite the contrary happened when Pope Silverius was
reputed to favor the Goths, who sided with the Arians. Prince
Belizarius deposed him, and sent him away into Greece, putting
Vigilius in his stead as pope. According to the testimony of
Procopius. <i>Ann. 538. num. 2.</i></p>

<p>After Vigilius, Peiagius was declared pope by two bishops
only, and one from Ostien, ** through the favor and assistance
of the emperor Justinian; notwithstanding, as Anastasius says,
the bad suspicion of having caused the death of the previous
Pope Vigilius, rested on him; for which reason none of the
other ecclesiastics, nay, not even the</p>

<br /><cite>* This Constantius was a Roman emperor, while
Theodoric was King of the Goths.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* Probably Ostia, a town at the mouth of the
Tiber. (Pub.) laity, would have communion or anything to do
with him. <i>Ann. 555. mum. 2.</i></cite> 

<h2>OF THE DREADFUL TIME, CALLED BY THE PAPISTS THE IRON AND LEADEN CENTURY, WHICH WAS WITH RESPECT TO THE ELECTION OF THE POPES</h2> 

<p>The oftmentioned cardinal Caesar Baronius, proceeding in his
account of the Register of the Popes, arrives at the year 901,
the beginning of the tenth century, where he bursts out, as if
with sorrow, calling this time hard, unfruitful, and productive
of much evil; and comparing it to an iron and leaden century,
full of wickedness and darkness, particularly in respect to the
great irregularity practiced in the installing and deposing of
the Roman popes; which was done partly by the Roman princes,
partly by the princes of Tuscany, who, now this one, then that
one, usurped the authority to elect the popes, and to dethrone
them; which happened in such a manner that all the preceding
abuses committed with reference to the Roman chair were mere
child's play in comparison with it.</p>

<p>For now, as Baronius writes, many monsters were thrust into
this chair as popes; which continued throughout this whole
century; yea, for a hundred and fifty years, namely from the
year 900 to about the year 1049, when the German Ottoes, who
occupied the imperial throne, interposed between both, although
they, not less than their predecessors, retained as their
prerogative the right of electing and rejecting the popes.
<i>Baron. Ann. 901. mum. 1.</i></p>

<p>The same cardinal relates, that in these awful and terrible
times some popes attained to the popedom not only by the power
of princes and potentates, but through the foolish love of
certain dishonorable and loose women, by whom Rome was ruled;
which we could in no wise believe, had not so eminent a man and
rigid papist, as Baronius was, described it so plainly and
circumstantially. See in <i>Baronius' Church History,</i>
printed at Antwerp 1623 <i>for the year 912. mum. 1;</i> also
928. <i>mums. i;</i> also <i>931. mums. 1.</i></p>

<p>Our soul is amazed, and we are ashamed to relate all that is
adduced there from various papistic writers, concerning the
election of some of the popes.</p>

<p>O God! open the eyes of these blind lovers of papacy, that
they may see, what succession it is, of which they have so long
boasted in vain; so that they may truly turn to Thee and Thy
church, and be saved I</p>

<p>NOTE.-With respect to this matter, the writer of the
Introduction to the <i>Martyr's Mirror,</i> of the year 1831,
says, "After that arose a time far more horrible, etc., for the
margraves of Tuscany, and after them the emperors, exercised so
much violence with reference to the papal chair, that they
thrust into it many monsters;'among whom was John X, who was
thrust into the chair by Theo-</p>

</div><div id="56"> 

<p>dora, mistress of Rome, while Lando was deposed."
Introduction, <i>fol. 26. col. 2. from Baron. Church History,
Anno 912. num.</i> I.</p>

<p>After that he relates, that John X was deposed by Theodora's
daughter, who also reigned over Rome, and that John XI, a
bastard child of Pope Sergius III, was put into it."And thus,"
he writes,"have whores and rogues, according to the testimony
of cardinal Baronius, ruled the papal chair, deposing and
instituting whomsoever they would." Fol. <i>27.</i> Col. i.
from <i>Baronius, Anno 931. num. i.</i> Continuing, the
aforementioned author remarks, "In this iron century it also
happened, that Stephen IX, having illegitimately attained to
the chair, was marked in the face by some rogues, for which
reason he staid in his house." Same place, from <i>Bdronius
Anno 9. num. z.</i></p>

<p>But, in order to give an account of those particular ones
only, who attained unlawfully to the papal chair, since we are
treating of the succession and mission of the popes, we must
also mention Pope John XII, who, being only eighteen .years
old, was forcibly put into the chair, and made pope by his
father, the margrave of Tuscany. Afterwards he was deposed by a
council at Rome, on account of his wicked life; but he remained
pope nevertheless, since nobody would excommunicate the pope,
however wicked his life might be, as Baronius relates. Compare
<i>Baron. Anno 955. num. I.</i> with <i>Anno 963. num. z.
2.</i></p>

<p>After that, Albericus, the count of Tusculum, made his son,
who was but ten years old, pope, and by his authority put him
into the chair under the name of Benedict IX'. After he had
reigned about nine years, a certain faction of the. Romans
elected another pope. When Gratianus, a priest at Rome, saw
this, he bought out both of them with money, and called himself
Gregory VI.</p>

<p>But the Emperor, not willing. to tolerate this, deposed all
three of them, and put Clemens II in their stead; and then
Damascus II; after him Leo IX; and finally, Victor II.</p>

<p>Thus the imperial line of the popes continued, until the
clergy itself became powerful enough to elect the popes without
waiting for the imperial mission, which formerly had been
deemed necessary; this afterwards gave rise to great schisms
and divisions in the Roman Church. Compare concerning all this
<i>Baron. Hist. Eccl. Anno 1033, num. 2.</i> with <i>Anno 1044.
nuvn. 2. 3; also, Anno 106. num. 1; Anno 1008. num.
1; Anno 1009 nun. 2; Anno ro55.</i></p>

<p>With regard to the aforesaid matters, the writer"of the
Introduction mentioned says <i>(Fol. 27.</i> Col. 2), "This
being taken into consideration, we say, that it is not true
that they, namely the Romanists, have an uninterrupted
succession from the days of the apostles to the present time,
as they would make the people believe, with their long register
of popes, whom they have connected as the links of a chain, as
though they, through lawful mission had always maintained a
continuous succession; but we have proved here that this chain
of succession is, in many ways, broken., "In the first place, by. Stephen VII and his successors, who
have forcibly thrust themselves into the chair. These certainly
had no mission; and where the mission ceases, the succession
ceases also., "In the second place, by those who were thrust into the
chair, without the order or sanction of the church, only by
kings and princes, yea, even by whores, through lewd love; or
who bought the same with money, as we have shown. These also
were certainly not sent; or, if they were sent, it must be
proved, by whom: for two contrary things cannot consist
together. If they were sent, they did not thrust themselves
into the chair, as Baronius says notwithstanding; but if they
thrust themselves into it, or were thrust into it by others
through unlawful means, then they were not sent, and
consequently, had no succession from the apostles."
Introduction. <i>fol. 28.</i> Col. z.</p>

<h2>TWO, THREE, AND FOUR POPES REIGNING AT THE SAME TIME; THE CHAIR OF ROME OCCASION ALLY WITHOUT A POPE FOR A LONG TIME</h2> 

<p>Formerly, when the papal dominion was coveted, the aim was
directed solely to the Roman chair, but now it was quite
different; for, instead of according to Rome, the honor of
electing the pope, as had always been the case heretofore, they
of Avignon, in France began, without regarding the Romans or
Italians, to constitute themselves the electors of the pope;
insomuch that they for this end elected a certain person, whom
they call Benedict XIII, notwithstanding the Roman chair was
occupied by a pope called Gregory XII; thus setting not only
pope against pope, but France against Italy, and Avignon
against Rome.*</p>

<p>Of this, P. J. Twisk gives the following account"At this
time there reigned two popes, who were for a long time at great
variance with each other; the one at Rome in Italy, the other
at Avignon., "When Pope Innocentius at Rome was dead, Benedict XIII still
occupied the papal chair in France. Then Gregory XII was
elected pope." <i>Chron. P. .I. Twish, ISth Book, for the year
1406. page .758. col. z. ex Chron. Platinae, fol. 396. Fasc.
Temp. fol. 187.</i></p>

<p>The same writer, after narrating successively several other
things which happened in the five subsequent years, again makes
mention, for the year 1411, of this Pope Benedict, who was
elected at Avignon; as well as of two others, who arose during
his reign, namely, Gregory and John; and</p>

<br /><cite>* After pope Anastasius, Symmachus was elected
pope in a tumult; and immediately also Laurentius was elected,
with whom he had two contests, yet came off victor, as the
papists say, for the clergy and king Diederik were on his side.
But after four years some of the clergy, who lusted after
uproar and contention, and some Roman senators, recalled
Laurentius; but they were sent into banishment. This caused a
fearful riot at Rome.-. J. Twisk, 5th Book, Anno 499. page 171.
col. 2 ex Platinal Chron, fol. 101. Fasc. Temp. fol. 114.</cite> 

</div><div id="57"> 

<p>also of their mutual contentions. These are his words, "At that time. there were three popes at once, who
incessantly excommunicated one another, and of whom the one
gained this potentate for his adherent, the other another.
Their names were Benedict, Gregory, and John., "These strove and contended with each other, not for the
honor of the Son of God, nor in behalf of the reformation and
correction of the adulterated doctrines or the manifold abuses
of the (Roman) church, but solely for the supremacy; to obtain
which, no one hesitated to perpetrate the most shameful
deeds., "In brief, the emperor exerted himself with great diligence,
and traveled three years through Europe, to exterminate this
shameful and pernicious strife and discord which prevailed in
Christendom. Having, therefore, rejected these three schismatic
popes, he brought it about, that Otto Columnius was made pope
by common consent; for, within the last twenty-nine years there
had always been at least two popes; one at Rome, and the other
at Avignon. When one blessed, the other cursed.* See
aforementioned <i>Chronicle, 15th Book, for the year 1411. page
765.</i> Col. r, a.</p>

<p>Concerning the overthrow of these three popes the same
author gives this statement, "In this year, Pope John XXIV,
having been convicted in fifty four articles, of heresies,
crimes, and base villainies, was deposed from papal dignity, by
the council of Constance, and given in custody to the
palsgrave. When these articles were successively read to him,
he sighed deeply and replied, - that he had done something
still worse, namely, that he had come down from the mountain of
Italy, and committed himself under the jurisdiction of a
council, in a country where he possessed neither authority nor
power.</p>

<p>After he had been in confinement at Munich three years, to
the astonishment of everyone, he was released, and made
cardinal and bishop of Tusculum, by Pope Martin V, whose feet
he submissively came to kiss at Florence. Shortly afterwards in
the year 1419, he died there, and was buried with great pomp
and solemnity in the church of St. John the Baptist.</p>

<p>After he had thus received his sentence, the other two popes
were summoned; of whom Gregory XII, who resided at Rimini, sent
Charles Maletesta thither, with instructions to abdicate
voluntarily in his name the papal dignity; in reward of which
he was made a legate in Marca d'Ancona, where he subsequently
died of a broken heart, at Racanay, a seaport on the Adriatic
Sea.</p>

<p>Benedict XIII, the pope at Avignon, remained obstinate in
his purpose, so that neither entreaties nor threats, nor the
authority of the council could move him, to submit, or lay down
his office, for the tranquillity of all Christendom. See the
afore</p>

<br /><cite>* So writes Jan Crispijn. mentioned
<i>Chronicle, 15th Book, for the year 1415 page 773.</i> Col.
a. <i>and 774.</i> Col. z.</cite> 

<p>NOTE -Pope Benedict XIII, through the incitation of the Ring
of France, and the University of Paris, sent his legates to
Pope Boniface IX; but they received as an answer, that their
master could not properly be called a pope, but an antipope;
whereupon they refuted him. See <i>De Ondergang, 15th Book,
Anno 1404. page 757.</i> Col. z.</p>

<p>Here it is proper to note what the last mentioned author
narrates concerning the plurality of the popes, who existed at
one and the same time., "Besides this," he writes,"it is related that there were
sometimes four, sometimes three, and sometimes two popes at the
same time."</p>

<p>Victor, Alexander III, Calixtus III, and Paschalis,
possessed together the papal authority, at the time of the
Emperor Frederick Barbarossa; and also Benedict VIII, Sylvester
II, and Gregory V were popes together, till finally, Henry III
deposed them.</p>

<p>Likewise Gregory XII, Benedict XIII, and Alexander V
arrogated, by excommunications, the papal authority.*</p>

<p>Further, how Stephen III and Constantine, Sergius III and
Christophorus, Urbanus V and Clemens VII, Eugene IV and Clemens
VIII, and many other popes, whom to mention it would take too
long, strove and contended with each other for the triple
crown, their own historians have sufficiently elucidated.
<i>See in the 9th Book o f the Chronicle for the year 891. page
315.</i> Col. 2. <i>from the tract, Den Onpartiidigen
Rechter.</i></p>

<h2>HOW THE ROMAN CHAIR STOOD VACANT</h2> 

<p>As great as was at times the inordinate desire manifested by
some for the possession of the chair of papal dominion, so
great was at other times the negligence and aversion as regards
the promotion of the same cause;** for it occasionally happened
that the chair stood vacant for a considerable time, in
consequence of the contentions and dissensions of the
cardinals; so that the whole Roman church was without a head;
without which, as the papists themselves assert, it cannot
subsist.</p>

<p>In order to demonstrate this matter, we shall (so as not to
intermix all sorts of writers) adduce the various notes of P.
J. Twisk, who gives information in regard to this subject from
Platina's Registers of the Popes, and other celebrated papistic
authors, in his <i>Chronicle,</i> printed Anno 1617 at
<i>Hoorn;</i> from which we shall briefly extract the following
instances, and present them to the reader.</p>

<br /><cite>* Concerning this matter, P. J, Twisk gives this
account, "At this time there were three popes at once, namely,
Gregory XII, Benedict XIII, and Alexander V. Thus was the'
great city, the spiritual Babylon divided into three parts, as
a token of its approaching fall.-Chron. for the year 1409, page
762, col. 1.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* Where no true foundation is, there is no
stability; this is apparent here: for as immoderate as they
were in seeking to possess the Roman chair, so immoderate they
were also in leaving it vacant.</cite> 

</div><div id="58"> 

<p>We shall, however, omit brief periods of a few days, weeks,
or months, and pass on to intervals of more than a year, which,
consequently, are not reckoned by months, or still lesser
periods. In this we shall begin with the shortest period, and
end with the longest.</p>

<p>On page <i>225, cot. 1,</i> mention is made of pope Martin I
(in the Register the seventy-sixth), that he was carried away a
prisoner by Constantine, emperor at Constantinople, and sent
into exile, where he died; whereupon the chair stood vacant for
over a year. Ex. <i>Hist. Georg; lib. 4. Platin. fol. 135. Zeg.
fol. 224, 225.</i></p>

<p>Page <i>260, cot. 2,</i> the same writer relates of Paul I
(the ninety-fifth in the Register), that he excommunicated
Constantine V, who had thrown the images out of the church; and
that Constantine, not heeding this, in his turn excommunicated
the pope; whereupon the latter died, and the Roman chair was
without occupant, and the church without a head, one year and
one month. Ex. <i>Platinae Regist. Pap. fol. 166. hist. Georg.
lib. 4. Franc. Altars. fol. 54.</i></p>

<p>After that he. makes mention of. Pope Honorius I (in the
Regiter the seventy-second), that he, having instituted the
exaltations of the Holy Cross, the Saturday processions, which
had to be held at Rome, the special prayers in the invocation
of the departed saints, etc., was deposed by a certain council
at Constantinople; and that, he having died the chair at Rome
was vacant for one year and seven months. See above mentioned
<i>Chronicle, page 218. cot. 1. ex hist. Georg. lib. 4. Franc.
Ala. Reg. fol. 44. Platin. Succ. Papae. fol. 130.</i></p>

<p>When Pope John XXIV was deposed on account of his wicked
life and ungodly conduct, and placed in confinement somewhere,
in the time of emperor Sigismund and the council of Constance,
there was for the time of two years and five months no one who
took charge of the papal government; hence the chair was
without an occupant for that length of time. See aforementioned
<i>Chronicle, for the year 1411, p. 769. cot. v. ex Fasc. Temp.
fol. 187. Platin. fol. 401. Onu f . fol. 406. 417. Hfst. Eccl.
Casp. Hedio. part. 3. lib. 11. Chronol. Leonh. lib. 6. Joh.
Stumpf. fol. 21. Hist. Georg. lib. 9. Hist. Mart. Adr. fol. 53.
to 66. Jan Crisp. fol. 356. to 175. Zeg. fol. 326.</i></p>

<p>Moreover, twice it happened, that for the space of about
three years no one was pope, or general head of the Roman
church; first, after the deposition of Pope Benedict XIII of
Avignon; secondly, before the election of Otto Calumna, called
Martin V, thus named because he was consecrated or ordained on
St. Martin's day. Concerning the first time, see P. <i>J.
Twisk, Chron. for the year 1415. page 774 cot. 1;</i>
concerning the second, see in the same book, for the year
<i>1417,</i> or two years afterwards p. <i>781. cot. 1.</i>
compared with <i>Fasc. Temp. fol. 187 Platin. fol. 470. Hist.
Georg. lib. 6. Mern. fol. 913. Seb. Fr.</i> (old edition)
<i>fol. 31.</i> After the death of Pope Nicholas I (the 108th
in the Register), information is obtained from Platina,
according to the account of various other authors, relative to
the condition of the Roman church at that time; namely, that
she had no pope or head for eight years, seven months and nine
days. Compare <i>Plat. Reg. Pap. fol</i>. 197. with <i>Georg.
hist. lib. 5. Joh. Munst. fol. 14. Mern. fol. 556. Francisc.
Ala. fol. 60. Also,</i> P. J. Twisk, <i>Chron. 9th Book,
edition of 1617. p. 297. cot. 2.</i></p>

<h2>OF THE UNGODLY LIFE AND DISORDERLY CONDUCT OF SOME OF THE POPES</h2> 

<p>Many of the ancient writers, even good Romanists, are so
replete with the manifold ungodly and extremely disorderly
conduct of some of those who occupied the papal chair, and are
placed in the Register of the true successors of Peter, that
one hardly knows how to begin, much less how to end.*</p>

<p>We shall therefore, so as not to cause any doubts as regards
our impartiality, not adduce all, but only a few, and these not
the worst, but, when contrasted with those whom we shall not
mention, the very best examples of the kind; and shall then
soon leave them, as we have no desire to stir up this sink of
rottenness, and pollute our souls with its stench.</p>

<p>Concerning the simony or sacrilege of some popes, a brief
account is given from Platina and other papistic writers, in
the <i>Chronijk van den Ondergang, 9th Book, for the year 828.
p. 281. cot. 2.</i> and p. <i>282. cot. 1.</i> The writer of
said chronicle, having related the complaint of the king of
France</p>

<br /><cite>* Besides what is told in the body of the work
concerning the ungodly life and disorderly conduct of some
popes, it is related by other authors, that some of them were
accused (even by those of the Roman church) of heresy, and
apostasy from the Roman faith. From"Platina's Register of the
Popes, number 37," is adduced the apostasy of Pope Liberius to
the tenets of the Arians; which happened in this wise: The
emperor, being at that time tainted with the tenets of the
Arians, deposed Pope Liberius, and sent him into exile ten
years. But when Liberius, overcome by the grievousness of his
misery, became infected with the faith and the confession of
the Arian sect, he was victoriously reinstated by the emperor,
into his papal chair at Rome. Compare Chron. Platinae (old
edition) fol. 73. Fasc. Temp fol. 102. Chron. Holl. div. 2.
cap. 20. with P. J. Twisk Chron. 4th Book, for the year 353,
page 150. cot. 2.</cite> 

<p>Concerning the apostasy of Pope Anastasius II to the tenets
of Achacius, bishop of Constantinople, and, consequently. to
the Nestorians, we find, from various Roman authors, this
annotation: Anastasius was at first a good Christian, but was
afterwards seduced by the heretic Achacius, bishop of
Constantinople. This was the second pope of bad repute who
adhered to the heresy of Nestorius, even as Liberius adhered to
the heresy of Arius. -Plat. Regist. Pap. fol. 100. Fasc. Temp.
fol. 113. Chron. Holl. div. c. 20. compared with the Chronijk
van den Ondergang, edition of 1617, 5th Book, for the year 497.
p. 171. cot. 2.</p>

<p>Some time after Hononus I had been exalted to the dignity of
the Roman chair, it was found that he did not maintain the
doctrines of the Roman church, but was opposed to them,
although he seemed to ingratiate himself with her in some
external things. Concerning this, the following words are given
by a certain author: Honorius added the invocation of the
saints to the litanies: he built many temples, and decorated
them with great magnificence; but this pope was afterwards
condemned as a heretic, together with six prelates, by the
sixth council of Constantinople. Compare-Hist. Georg . lib. 4.
Franc. Ala. fol. 44. Platin, Regiat. Pap. fol. 130. with the
last mentioned Chronicle, edition of 1617, for the year 622,
page 218. cot. 1.</p>

<p>In addition to the evil testimony which is given of John
XXIV, P. J. Twisk gives the following account, "This Pope John,
as some say, forcibly took possession of the papal chair, and
is styled by the ancient writers a true standard-bearer of all
heretics and epicures. He was a man better fitted for arms and
war, than for the service of God."-Chronijk, P. J. Twisk, 15th
Book, for the year 1411. p. 768. eol. 2.</p>

</div><div id="59"> 

<p>about the revenue of twenty-eight tonnen gold [2,800,000
guilders, or $784,000], annually drawn by the popes from said
kingdom, proceeds, to say, "How true the foregoing is, appears
sufficiently from the fact that John XXII. at his death left
two hundred and fifty tonnen gold <i>($7,000,000)</i> in his
private treasury; as Franciscus Petrarcha, a credible writer,
plainly states.</p>

<p>Boniface VII, finding that he could no longer remain in
safety at Rome, surreptitiously took the precious jewels and
treasures. from St. Peter's coffers, and fled with them to
Constantinople.</p>

<p>Clemens VIII, and other popes, were at various times
convicted of such sacrilege, by their own people.</p>

<p>Gregory IX sold his absolution to the emperor for a hundred
thousand ounces of gold.</p>

<p>Benedict IX, being stricken with fear, sold to Gregory VI
the papal chair, for fifteen hundred pounds of silver.</p>

<p>The simony and sacrilege of Alexander Vi is also
sufficiently known, from his epitaph, whieh we, for certain
reasons, omit.</p>

<p>Further, how Leo X, through Tetzel, and many other popes,
through their legates and nuncios, sold their letters of
indulgence, is better known throughout all so-called
Christendom than the popes of Rome desire. Compare this with
<i>Ghron.. Plat. ( old</i> edition) fol<i>. 183. Fran. Ala.
fol. 58 Onpartijdigen Rechter, fol. 28.</i></p>

<p>Concerning the open tyranny, secret treachery, and deadly
poisoning, imputed to some of the popes, the following account
is given from Vergerius and others</p>

<p><i>I. Their Tyranny.-Julius II</i> had more than two hundred
thousand Christians put to death, in the space of seven
years.</p>

<p>Gregory IX caused the emperor's envoys by whom he was
informed, that Jerusalem was retaken, to be strangled, contrary
to all justice.</p>

<p>Clemens IV openly beheaded Conrad, the son of the king of
Sicily, without valid reasons, or legal proceedings.</p>

<p>It is not necessary to give a recital here, of the
innumerable multitude of true Christians, who, through the
pretensions of some popes, were deprived of life, in all parts
of the earth, by fearful deaths at the hands of the
executioner, only on account of their religion; for this is
sufficiently known, and needs no further demonstration.</p>

<p><i>II. Their Treachery.-The Emperor</i> Frederick, at the
diet of Nuremburg, openly complained of the treachery of Pope
Alexander III, and that in the presence of the princes of the
empire, before whom he read the letter containing the treason,
which the pope had sent to the soldiers of the Turkish
emperor.</p>

<p>Gregory II secretly issued a prohibition, not to pay to the
Emperor Leo his customary (and due) tax.</p>

<p>Alexander VI availed himself of the assistance of the Turks
(or at least, called upon them), against the French.</p>

<p><i>III Their Poisoning</i>.-Ancient writers mention, that
Pope Paul III poisoned his own mother and niece, that the
inheritance of the Farnesi might fall to him.</p>

<p>Innocentius IV, through a priest, administered poison to the
emperor, in a host, thus removing him from this life.</p>

<p>Moreover, how another pope, whose name is sufficiently
known, put to death by poison, in accordance with Turkish
custom, the brother of Gemeno Vajazet, the Mohammedan emperor,
which was contrary to common justice, because he was ransomed
with two tonnen treasure, needs not to be recounted, as the
fame of it has gone out both into the east and the west.</p>

<p>This same pope had at a certain time determined to poison in
like manner some cardinals, when the cupbearer made a mistake
in the tankard containing the poison (as the ancient writers
have annotated), and he who had arranged this, was himself
served with it, insomuch that he died with the cardinals who
had drank of it. Compare <i>De Tractaten Contarcene, hergerij
des Onpartijdigen Rechters, especially pp. 48, 49, 50,</i> with
the <i>Cleronijk van den O;ndergang, first part, for the year
1227. p. 544. col. 1. 2.</i> Also <i>p. 768. col. 2,</i> of the
bad conduct of Pope John XXIV, taken from <i>Fase. Temp. f od.
187. Platin. fol. 401 Ontc f r. fol. 406. 417. Hist. Eccl.
Cusp. H.edio. part 3. lib. 11. Chronolog. Leonh. lib. 6. Henr.
Bull. of the councils, 2d Book, chap. 8. Joh. Stumph. fol. 21.
Hist. Georg. lib. 6. Seb. Fra.</i> (old edition) <i>fol. 31
fol. 89. Hist. Andriani fol. 53 to fod. 66. Jan Crisp. fol. 256
tto 369. Chron. Car. lib. 5. Zeg. fol. 326.</i></p>

<h2>OF THE DIVINE JUDGMENTS AND PUNISHMENTS VISITED UPON SOME OF THE POPES</h2> 

<p>The divine vengeance for great misdeeds is sometimes carried
out in this life, and sometimes reserved for the life to come.*
The vengeance which is inflicted in this life, is sometimes
executed immediately by God Himself; at other times He uses
means-either the elements, or things composed of the elements,
yet without life; and sometimes He does it by means of living
creatures as, men, beasts, etc. However, here we shall only
speak of the judgment of God visited upon some of the popes in
such a manner and through such means, as will be shown.</p>

<p>In the eighth book of the <i>Chrot2ijk van den Undergang der
Tyrannen, for the year 767, page 262,</i> col. 2, several
examples of this kind are successively related, which we shall
present here as is most suitable, and in the best possible
order.**</p>

<br /><cite>* But, after thy hardness and impenitent heart,
treasurest up unto thyself wrath against the day of wrath and
revelation of the righteous judgment of God; who will render to
every man according to his deeds. Rom. 2:5, 6.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* Notwithstanding, the examples, related in the
body of the work are recorded by P. J. Twisk, it is proper to
state, that they were extracted from various papistic
writers.</cite> 

</div><div id="60"> 

<p>The author of said chronicle, after mentioning the
ignominious expulsion of Pope Sylvester Campanus from the city
of Rome, relates the sad ending of Constantine, Hadrian, John
Benedict, Boniface, Lucius% Innocentius, Nicholas, Paul, Leo,
Clement, etc.</p>

<p>Pope Constantine II, having led an ungodly life, was
deprived, in a council, of both his eyes, and the papal power,
and then put into a convent.</p>

<p>Hadrian III, fleeing from Rome, came to Venice in the habit
of a gardener, where he was ordered to work in a garden.</p>

<p>Hadrian IV was choked to death by a fly, which flew into his
mouth, or, as others say, into his drink, while he was
drinking.</p>

<p>John XI,* being apprehended by the soldiers of a certain
Guido, was smothered with a pillow, which they held upon his
mouth.</p>

<p>John XXII was crushed by the falling in of the vault of a
pavilion, and thus departed this life.</p>

<p>Benedict Vl,** was shut up in the Castle Angelo, by
Cynthius, a citizen of Rome, and there strangled by him, on
account of his great villainy.</p>

<p>Benedict IX was killed by poison, which had been put into a
fig by an abbess, who was considered a devout, spiritual
daughter.</p>

<p>The body of Boniface VII, who had died a sudden death, was
dragged along the street, with his feet tied to a rope, and
ignominiously buried in the common grave.</p>

<p>Lucius II, about to storm the capitol, whither the senators
had fled, was so seriously pelted with stones, that he died
soon afterwards.</p>

<p>When Innocentius IV had unjustly sentenced to death Robert
of Lincoln, because he had censured, with the mouth as well as
with the pen, the nefarious deeds of the popes, and Robert
therefore appealed to Christ, the Supreme judge, the pope was
found dead in his bed the following day. ***</p>

<p>Nicholas III died very unexpectedly of apoplexy (called the
stroke of God).</p>

<p>Paul II, having supped very merrily, died soon after,
likewise apoplexy.</p>

<p>Leo X died while laughing and frolicking at his cups.</p>

<p>Clemens VIII, having conspired with Franciscus, king of
France, against the Emperor Charles V, was afterwards
apprehended by the emperor's captains, derided above measure,
ultimately reinstated in the papal chair, but finally, in the
year 1534, suffocated, together with several cardinals, with
the smoke of torches. From Onpar. <i>Recht.</i> Also, from
various other accepted authors who have previously been
referred to. ****</p>

<br /><cite>* John XI was put for John XXII; by the author
from whom this was taken, but this is an error.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* This Beneict VI was also put for his
successor, Benedict IX; which error we have corrected.</cite> 

<br /><cite>** Our author relates, that before the death of
Pope Innocentius IV a voice was hard in the papal court,
saying"Come, thou wretched man, to the judgment of God!"</cite> 

<br /><cite>*** Many more such examples might be related
here, but, since by these few our aim is sufficiently
understood, we deem it unnecessary to enter more deeply into
this subject, and shall, therefore, let this suffice.</cite> 

<h2>CONCLUSION OF THE MATTERS HERE RELATED</h2> 

<p>We will now take leave of the popes, and let them pass. It
is enough for us to know, that their succession, of which the
papists boast so much, is confused and vain, or, at least,
without tenable grounds. How we have proved this, is not for us
to say; we let others judge.</p>

<p>This would be a proper time in order to exhibit the highly
renowned Latin church, the Roman Babylon, in her full form-to
bring up from the bottom, and present minutely and in the best
order, the manifold and implacable contentions which have
arisen from time to time in, with, and among them, on matters
of faith, although they have so much to say about their
extraordinary unity: how the popes contended against the
councils, and the councils against the popes; how one annulled
and rejected what the other had made and instituted; yea, how
they sometimes persecuted one another even unto death, and
devoured and killed each other in the most cruel manner, even
as though they were fighting with their avowed enemies; to say
nothing of the great amount of superstition and human
invention,* which, like horrible monsters and abortions, have
proceeded, now by one, then by another, from the lap of the
misnamed holy Roman church; for to treat of this, as the
subject demands, would be almost an endless task, or, at least,
require a whole book. What was once a comedy (with respect to
the gay and merry regime of the papal dominion) has, through
the beginnings of its downfall, been changed into a tragedy.
However, what we have shown, relates only to this present life;
but the most mournful tragedy, according to the threatening of
God (still we hope for the best), is yet to come, and concerns
the future and eternal life.**</p>

<p>Besides these most ungodly things which we have mentioned,
they were drunk with the blood of the saints; yea, they did not
only pour out as water the blood of the beloved friends and
children of God, and cool their thirst for blood therewith,
but, besides inconceivable cruelties, they heaped also the
greatest ignominy upon their bodies, throwing them like mire
upon the earth, or giving them to the beasts for food, or, on
stakes and wheels, to the birds to devour.***</p>

<p>God shall certainly visit this yet upon them, and not let it
go unavenged."He that toucheth you," says Zechariah to the
church of God,"toucheth the apple of his eye" (Zech. 2:8).</p>

<br /><cite>*"But in vain they do worship me, teaching for
doctrines the commandments of men," saith the Lord. Matt.
15:9.</cite> 

<p>. ** Everything has its opposite: weeping is the opposite to
laughing;iwailing and mourning, to shouting and rejoicing; but
in all this t is better to rejoice last than before."Woe to
thee that spoilest, and thou wast not spoiled; and dealest
treacherously, and they dealt not treacherously with theel when
thou shall cease to spoil, thou shall be spoiled; and when thou
shall make an end to deal treacherously, they shall deal
treacherously with thee" (Isa. 33:1).</p>

<br /><cite>** ' Judge not, that ye be not judged. For with
what judgment ye judge, ye shall be judged; and with what
measure ye mete, it shall be measured to you again" (Matt. 7:1,
2)."If any man have an ear, let him hear. He that leadeth into
captivity shall go into captivity: be that killeth with the
sword must be killed with the sword" (Rev. 13:9, 10).</cite> 

</div><div id="61"> 

<p>Oh, that they would become converted betimes! Oh, that they
would anticipate the uplifted rod of the divine wrath! Oh, that
they would fear, and escape, through genuine repentance, the
fearful kindled fire of his everlasting displeasure, which the
wicked and impenitent shall certainly incur. That meanwhile all
those who .are still imprisoned in Babylon, and sit in the
darkness and shadow of death, would, for the preservation of
their soul, flee out of her; that they would set out for
Jerusalem, the spiritual vision of peace (understand, the true
church of God); that they would seek their souls' salvation
while it is time, yea, that they would find, obtain and
preserve it! This is certainly a thing to be wished for.</p>

<p>NOTE-"Come out of her, my people, that ye be not partakers
of her sins, and that ye receive not of her sins" ( Rev. 18:4)
,</p>

<p>These words as it appears are taken from the address of the
prophet Jeremiah to the Israelites who were in bondage, in
Babylon, saying as in a hasty and affrighted voice, "Flee out of
Babylon, and deliver every man his soul; be not cut off in her
iniquity; for this is the time of the Lord's vengeance; he will
render unto her a recompense" ( Jer. 51:6).</p>

<p>In like manner men must also hastily come out of the
spiritual Babel, out of the confusion and many corrupt, human
forms of worship and vanities of the world."Save yourselves
from this untoward generation" (Acts 2:40)."The Lord give thee
understanding in all things" (II Tim. 2:7).</p>

</div><div id="62"> 

<h1>POEMS IN THE ORIGINAL LANGUAGE</h1><br />

<h2>THE HOLY MARTYRS OF THE NEW COVENANT</h2> 

<p><i>To all charitably inclined Anabaptists and non-</i><br />
<i>resistant Christians:</i><br />
<i>Rechtsinnige! die Christum hebt beleden</i><br />
<i>Te volgen in een ware ootmoedigheydt;</i><br />
<i>En die ter noodt den kruys-bergh wilt betreden,</i><br />
<i>Die vol en dicht van scherpe doornen leydt;</i><br />
<i>Vertoeft, en siet nu, in does jammer-blaren,</i><br />
<i>Wat ach, een wee, een weerloos Christen naeckt</i><br />
<i>Wanneer sijn ziel met Christo soeckt to paren</i><br />
<i>En, door't geloof, na 't eeuwigh leven haeclzt.</i><br />
<i>Al siet gy a geloofs-genooten swerven,</i><br />
<i>Om Christi naem, met kommer, angst en pijn,</i><br />
<i>b'erlaten van haer huysgesin, en erven,</i><br />
<i>En dolen, in een woest landt, en woestijn,</i><br />
<i>En waer sy zijn, als vluchtelingen, woonen:</i><br />
<i>Dewijl men haer een vast verblijf ontseydt.</i><br />
<i>En vyer en swaerdt en galgh en radt gaet toonen,</i><br />
<i>Met grimrlaigheydt tot hare doodt bereydt;</i><br />
<i>Laet daerom niet a vyer'ge liefd' verkoelen,</i><br />
<i>Al waeyt den Noorden windt,* van kruys en smaedt,</i><br />
<i>Maer scherper wilt na 't faligh leven doelen,</i><br />
<i>En op gebeen a ziel tot Godt verlaet:</i><br />
<i>Want als de rose en lelye** in de doornen</i><br />
<i>Opwassen, en alsoo ontcingelt staen;</i><br />
<i>Soo Christi Kerek, en lieve uytverkoornen,</i><br />
<i>Met druck en angst, oock somtijdts zinn belaen.</i><br />
<i>Maer of al schoon, 't welck wonder schijnt, een
moeder</i><br />
<i>Het eenigh kindt, van haer gebaerdt, vergat;</i><br />
<i>So blijft nochtans de Heer ons ziel-behoeder</i><br />
<i>In eeuwighcydt, ons kroone, eer en schat.</i><br />
<i>De waerdigheydt van alles dat ntagh blijcken,</i><br />
<i>En 't beste dat een mensch op aerden heeft;</i><br />
<i>Sachtmoedige! is geensins to gehjcken</i><br />
<i>By d' heerlijckheydt *** van die hier deughtsaem leef
t.</i><br />
<i>Self Godes Soon, sijas Vaders wel-behagen,</i><br />
<i>Die al 't geschep:n eygendont geniet;</i><br />
<i>Heeft, in veel smaedt, een doorne kroon gedragen,</i><br />
<i>En van sijn volck onlijdelijck verdriet;</i><br />
<i>Die heeft a voor-gegaen, en veel geleden,</i><br />
<i>la den het kruys de seer vervloeckte doodt,</i><br />
<i>Wilt hem dan op den Martel-wegh na treden,</i><br />
<i>En achten niet het lijden, druck, en noodt.</i><br />
<i>Want als gy hebt des werelts smaedt, en schanden,</i><br />
<i>En sonden-drift, verwonnen heldelijck;</i><br />
<i>Dan suit gy in het saligh leven landen,</i><br />
<i>En wesen by Godts Heiden meldelijck:****</i><br />
<i>Wanneer haer Godt, met sael'ge glory-meyen,</i><br />
<i>En eeuw'ge vreught, en rijckdom, eer, en prael,</i><br />
<i>Sal in 't Palleys der Heem'len binnen leyen,</i><br />
<i>En wesen self haer loon, en bly onthael:</i><br />
<i>Om dat sy t'saem de werelt niet en achten,</i><br />
<i>En haer geloof bezegelden met bloedt:</i><br />
<i>Een grondt, en steun, daer op gy meught verwachten</i><br />
<i>Het Koningrijck vol eeuwigh blijvend goedt.</i><br />
<i>Daerom, o Heer! leer! ons ons doen besinnen,</i><br />
<i>Door middel van het Nieuw' herbondt, a Woordt;</i><br />
<i>Dat wy a doch tot aen de doodt beminnen,</i><br />
<i>En 's werelts korte vreught ons niet bekoordt;</i><br />
<i>Want eeuwigh is soo tang! ja is onendigh!</i><br />
<i>En valt to bang, voor die gy uyt den Throon</i><br />
<i>Van a genade stoot. hersterckt anwendigh</i><br />
<i>Het Christ-geloof, en zijt ons Schildt, en Loon.</i>
</p>
<br /><cite>* Song of Solomon 4:16.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* Song of Solomon 2.</cite> 

<br /><cite>** Rom. 8:18.</cite> 

<br /><cite>*** Rev. 3:5.</cite> 

<p><i>--------</i><br />
<i>Behoedt oock voor ziel-schadelijcke tijden</i><br />
<i>D'Hooghmogende van 't Vrye Nederlandt;</i><br />
<i>Die 't Helsch geblaeck en weerloos Christen ddjden</i><br />
<i>Nie 't dulden, reyckt altijdt a vrede-handt:</i><br />
<i>Op dat wy doch, als ware Christen rancken,</i><br />
<i>Hier onder haer Gebiedt, seer vryelijck,</i><br />
<i>U met veel vrucht, en vollen wasdom dancken,</i><br />
<i>Tot glory van a Hemelsch Koningrijck.</i><br />
<i>Non est mortale quod opto.</i></p>
  <hr />
<h2>SONNET</h2> 

<p><i>Wanneer Jerusalem, door's vyandts swaert en
degen,</i><br />
<i>Seer deerlijck was verwoest; en 't ed'le lacobs zaet</i><br />
<i>('t Welck, als doorlautert gout, uytblonck met veel
cieraet)</i><br />
<i>Gewentelt lagh in 't bloedt, en deerelijck
verslegen;</i><br />
<i>Stracks leremias sulcks neemt in sijn overwegen,*</i><br />
<i>Dat soo de slaende bandt des vyandts henen gaet:</i><br />
<i>Hy treurt, dat selfs den rouw hem in 't gebeente
slaet:</i><br />
<i>En is in asch, en stof, al weenende, gelegen.</i><br />
<i>hreed-lievende! die oock het moort-gewelt aensiet,</i><br />
<i>Dat in den Wijnbergh Gods, van oudts af, is
geschiet;</i><br />
<i>Wie smeeckt de Heere niet, met t' saem-.qevouwe handen:</i><br />
<i>O Heer! die donck're wolck van 't Christendom of drijft;</i><br />
<i>So niet: ons Christ-geloof dan in de hope stijft,</i><br />
<i>Dat 't hert ons niet vertsaeght in 't worgen, moorden,
branden.</i><br />
<i>lustus ex fade vivet.</i><br />
<i>_____________________</i><br />
</p>

<h2>ON THE BLOODY THEATRE OF THE ANABAPTISTS OR NONRESISTANT CHRISTIANS</h2> 

<p class="c8">To my brother T. 1. van Braght:</p>

<p><i>Een Hemelsvyer, van lust en yver, hole de snaren</i><br />
<i>Van David aen den galm, van een bedroeft accoort:</i><br />
<i>Wanneer den angst des doodts, uyt Zion, wiert
gehoort,</i><br />
<i>Dat by sijn 's herten rouw, in Psalmen ging verklaren.
**</i><br />
<i>Soo sagh ick 't yver-vyer, o Broeder! uyt a varen,</i><br />
<i>Als gyde Martelaers van 't Nieuw Verbondt bracht</i><br />
<i>voort:</i><br />
<i>Self, op die tijdt, wanneer door*** sieckt', het klaeghlijck
woort</i><br />
<i>Tot a quam: 't Schijnt ghy sterft, wilt moeyt' en yver
sparen.</i><br />
<i>Maer hebt, des niettemin, dit bloedigh offer-werck,</i><br />
<i>Met krancke, en swacke leen, ten dienste van Gods
Kerck,</i><br />
<i>Door onvermoeyde vlijt, en yver, dus beschreven.</i><br />
<i>Derhalven, wie gy zijt, die Christum onsen Heer</i><br />
<i>Wilt volgen, in sijn woort, en Goodelijcke leer;</i><br />
<i>Wort door dit lesen doch tot ware deught gedreven.</i><br />
<br />
<i>P. van Braght.</i></p>

<br /><cite>* Lamentations 1:1.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* Of the desolation of Jerusalem! David in his
Lamentation sung, "O God, the heathen are come into thine
inheritance; thy holy temple they have defiled; they have laid
Jerusalem on heaps" (Ps. 79:l )., "By the rivers of Babylon there we sat down, yea, we wept
when we remembered Zion. We hung our harps on the willows in the
midst thereof" (Ps. 137:1, 2).</cite> 

<br /><cite>** In 1659 the hand of God was laid heavily upon
my brother, in that he was visited with a severe sickness, so
that to all appearance, it seemed that he would not
recover.</cite> 

</div><div id="63"> 

<h1>MARTYRS MIRROR: FIRST PART</h1>

<h2>THE BLOODY THEATER<br />
-OR-</h2>

<h2>MARTYRS MIRROR<br />
OF THE<br />
ANABAPTIST OR DEFENSELESS CHRISTIANS<br />
WHO SUFFERED AND WERE SLAIN FOR THE TESTIMONY OF
JESUS<br />
CHRIST, THEIR SAVIOUR, FROM THE TIME OF CHRIST<br />
UNTIL THE YEAR A. D. 1660</h2> 

<h2>AN ACCOUNT OF THE HOLY BAPTISM OF THE MARTYRS IN THE FIRST CENTURY,<br />
That is, from the first year of the ministry of
Jesus Christ to the year 100.</h2> 

<h2>SUMMARY OF THE BAPTISM IN THE FIRST CENTURY</h2> 

<p>[We have begun with the baptism of John, who in Holy
Scripture is properly called <i>the Baptist,</i> because he was
the first and chief one who truly administered baptism with all
that pertains to it; concerning which we have noted the time,
place, persons, etc. From there we proceeded to Christ and the
command which He gave concerning baptism; thence to the
apostles, and how they fulfilled Christ's command. But, since
the apostles who wrote of baptism did not live to the close of
this century, we, in order to accomplish our design, resorted
to the fathers who lived shortly after the apostles, and wrote
on baptism; and thus the first century is concluded with their
testimony.]</p>

<p>We shall begin to give an account, from century to century,
up to the present day, or at least, to the time of our fathers,
how that the true baptism upon faith, with rejection of infant
baptism, has always obtained, and been practiced, according as
it was possible, by the true church of God, or at least, by
some of the orthodox believers, according o the freedom, or the
oppression prevailing at any particular time; and that this
same faith, on account of which the world calls us Anabaptists,
was begun by God, through John, was confirmed by Christ and
propagated and maintained by the apostles as well as by their
successors, till the time of our fathers; together with an
account of the persons who suffered for that faith.</p>

<p>Coming, then, to the article of baptism we shall thus begin
and finish the subject: In the first century, embracing
chiefly the time of Christ and His holy apostles, we shall
place, not by inferences, but through express words, that which
Holy Scripture has to say in regard to it, as being the
foundation of the matter, and afterwards, that which is
recorded by trustworthy authors.</p>

<h2>CONCERNING THE BAPTISM OF JOHN</h2> 

<p>The holy evangelists tell us the time, place and manner of
the same. Luke writes, chap. 3:1-3, "Now in the fifteenth year
of the reign of Tiberius Caesar, Pontius Pilate being governor
of Judaea, and Herod being tetrarch of Galilee, and his brother
Philip tetrarch of Ituraea and the region of Trachonitis, and
Lysanias the tetrarch of Abilene, Annas and Caiaphas being the
high priests, the word of God came unto John the son of
Zacharias in the wilderness. And he came into all the country
about Jordan, preaching the baptism of repentance for</p>

</div><div id="65"> 

<p>the remission of sins." Matt. 3:1, 2, "In those days came
John the Baptist, preaching in the wilderness of Judaea, and
saying, Repent ye: for the kingdom of heaven is at hand." Verse
11, "I indeed baptize you with water unto repentance." Acts
19:4, Paul said, "John verily baptized with the baptism of
repentance, saying unto the people, that they should believe on
him which should come after him, that is, on Christ Jesus."</p>

<h2>THE PERSONS JOHN BAPTIZED</h2> 

<p>Matt. 3:5-9, "Then went out to him Jerusalem, and all Judea,
and all the region round about Jordan, and were baptized of him
in Jordan, confessing their sins. But when he saw many of the
Pharisees and Sadducees come to his baptism, he said unto them,
O generation of vipers, who hath warned you to flee from the
wrath to come? Bring forth therefore fruits meet for
repentance: and think not to say within yourselves, We have
Abraham to our father: for I say unto you, that God is able of
these stones to raise up children unto Abraham." Luke 7:29,
30, "And all the people that heard him, and the publicans,
justified God, being baptized with the baptism of John. But the
Pharisees and lawyers rejected the counsel of God against
themselves, being not baptized of him." John 3:23, "And John
also was baptizing in Enon near to Salim, because there was
much water there and they came, and were baptized."</p>

<h2>HOW, AMONG OTHERS, HE BAPTIZED ALSO JESUS THE SON OF GOD</h2> 

<p>Matt. 3:13-17, "Then cometh Jesus from Galilee to Jordan unto
John, to be baptized of him. But John forbade him, saying, I
have need to be baptized of thee, and comest thou to me? And
Jesus answering said unto him, Suffer it to be so now: for thus
it becometh us to fulfill all righteousness. Then he suffered
him. And Jesus, when he was baptized, went up straightway out
of the water: and, lo, the heavens were opened unto him, and he
saw the Spirit of God descending like a dove, and lighting upon
him: and to a voice from heaven, saying, This is my beloved
Son, in whom I am well pleased." See further, concerning this
Mark 1:9-11; Luke 3:21-23.</p>

<h2>HOW CHRIST BAPTIZED THROUGH HIS DISCIPLES</h2> 

<p>John 3:22, "After these things came Jesus and his disciples
into the land of Judaea; and there he tarried with them, and
baptized." Chap. 4:1-3, "When therefore the Lord knew how the
Pharisees had heard that Jesus made and baptized more disciples
than John (though Jesus himself baptized not, but his
disciples), he left Judaea and departed again into
Galilee."</p>

<h2>HOW CHRIST COMMANDED BAPTISM TO HIS DISCIPLES, BEFORE HIS ASCENSION</h2> 

<p>Matt. 28:18-20, "And Jesus came and spake unto them, saying,
All power is given unto me in heaven and in earth. Go ye
therefore, and teach (or make disciples of) all nations,
baptizing them in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and
of the Holy Ghost: teaching them to observe all things
whatsoever I have commanded you: and, lo, I am with you alway,
even unto the end of the world. Amen." Mark 16:15,16, "And he
said unto them, Go ye into all the world, and preach the gospel
to every creature. He that believeth and is baptized shall be
saved; but he that believeth not shall be damned."</p>

<h2>HOW THE APOSTLES EXECUTED THIS COMMAND OF CHRIST TO TEACH AND BAPTIZE, AFTER THE ASCENSION OF CHRIST</h2> 

<p>Acts 2:37, 38, "Now when they heard this, they were pricked
in their heart, and said unto Peter and to the rest of the
apostles, Men and brethren, what shall we do? Then Peter said
unto them, Repent, and be baptized every one of you in the name
of Jesus Christ for the remission of sins."</p>

<p>Verses 41, 42, "Then they that gladly received his word were
baptized; and the same day there were added unto them about
three thousand souls. And they continued steadfastly in the
apostles' doctrine and fellowship, and in breaking of bread,
and in prayers."</p>

<p>Acts 8:12, 13, "But when they believed Philip preaching the
things concerning the kingdom of God, and the name of Jesus
Christ, they were baptized, both men and women. Then Simon
himself believed also: and when he was baptized, he continued
with Philip."</p>

<p>Verses 36-39, "And as they [namely, Philip and the Ethiopian]
went on their way, they came unto a certain water: and the
eunuch said, See, here is water; what doth hinder me to be
baptized? And Philip said, If thou believest with all thine
heart, thou mayest. And he answered and said, I believe that
Jesus Christ is the Son of God. And he commanded the chariot to
stand still: and they went down both into the water, both
Philip and the eunuch; and he baptized him. And when they were
come up out of the water, the Spirit of the Lord caught away
Philip, that the eunuch saw him no more: and he went on his way
rejoicing."</p>

<p>Acts 9:17, 18, "And Ananias went his way, and entered into
the house; and putting his hands on him said, Brother Saul, the
Lord, even Jesus, that appeared unto thee in the way as thou
camest, hath sent me, that thou mightest receive thy sight, and
be filled with the Holy Ghost. And immediately there fell from
his eyes as it had been scales and he received sight forthwith,
and arose, and was baptized."</p>

</div><div id="66"> 

<p>Acts 10:46-48, "For they heard them speak with tongues, and
magnify God. Then answered Peter, Can any man forbid water,
that these should not be baptized, which have received the Holy
Ghost as well as we? And he commanded them to be baptized in
the name of the Lord."</p>

<p>Acts 16:13-15, "And on the sabbath we went out of the city by
a river side, where prayer was wont to be made; and we sat
down, and spake unto the women which resorted thither. And a
certain woman named Lydia, a seller of purple, of the city of
Thyatira, which worshiped God, heard us: whose heart the Lord
opened, that she attended unto the things which were spoken of
Paul. And when she was baptized, and her household, she
besought us, saying, If ye have judged me to be faithful to the
Lord, come into my house, and abide there. And she constrained
us."</p>

<p>Verse 40, "And they went out of the prison, and entered into
the house of Lydia: and when they had seen the brethren, they
comforted them, and departed."</p>

<p>Acts 16:29-34, "Then he [namely the keeper of the prison]
called for a light, and sprang in [the prison], and came
trembling, and fell down before Paul and Silas, and brought
them out, and said, Sirs, what must I do to be saved? And they
said, Believe on the Lord Jesus Christ, and thou shalt be
saved, and thy house. And they spake unto him the word of the
Lord, and to all that were in his house. And he took them the
same hour of the night, .and washed their stripes; and was
baptized, he and all his, straightway. And he led them into his
house, and seated them at the table, and rejoiced with all his
house, that he believed in God," or [as the latest translators
say],"he rejoiced, that he and all his house believed in
God."</p>

<p>Acts 18:8, "Crispus, the chief ruler of .the synagogue,
believed on the Lord with all his house; and many of the
Corinthians hearing believed, and were baptized."</p>

<p>I Cor. 1:14-16, "I thank God [says Paul] that I baptized none
of you but Crispus and Gaius; lest any should say that I had
baptized in mine own name. And I baptized also the household of
Stephanas; besides, I know not whether I baptized any
other."</p>

<p>Compare this with I Cor. 16:15, 16, "I beseech you, brethren
(ye know the house of Stephanas, that it is the firstfruits of
Achaia, and that they have addicted themselves to the ministry
of the saints), that ye submit yourselves unto such, and to
every one that helpeth with us, and laboreth."</p>

<h2>WHAT TESTIMONY THY HOLY APOSTLES HAVE GIVEN IN THEIR EPISTLES, CONCERNING BAPTISM</h2> 

<p>1. That it signifies the burying of sins, and the
resurrection into a new life.</p>

<p>Rom. 6:3, 4,"Know ye not, that so many of us as were
baptized into Jesus Christ were baptized into his death.
Therefore we are buried with him by baptism into death: that
like as Christ was raised up from the dead by the glory of the
Father, even so we also should walk in newness of life."*</p>

<p>NOTE.-To the foregoing belongs also the passage, Tit. 3:5,
where baptism is called,"the washing of regeneration," and Eph.
5:26,"the washing of water by the word."</p>

<p>2. <i>That through faith we become children of God, and
through baptism put on Christ. **</i></p>

<p>Gal. 3:26, 27, "For ye are all the children of God by faith
in Christ Jesus. For as many of you as have been baptized into
Christ have put on Christ."</p>

<p>3. <i>That as the ark with eight souls was preserved in the
water, so also believing baptized Christians are preserved or
saved in baptism through the answer of a good
conscience.</i></p>

<p>I Pet. 3:20, 21, "When once the longsuffering of God waited
in the days of Noah, while the ark was preparing, wherein few,
that is, eight souls were saved by water.*** The like figure
whereunto baptism doth also now save us, (not the putting away
of the filth of the flesh, but the answer of a good conscience
toward God)."</p>

<h2>MOREOVER, THE CONDITIONS REQUIRED IN, AT, AND ABOUT BAPTISM, INDICATE SUFFICIENTLY THAT IT WAS NOT ADMINISTERED TO CHILDREN, BUT TO PERSONS OF UNDERSTANDING</h2> 

<p>In order to receive baptism in a worthy and true manner,
there are required sorrow and repentance of sins, accompanied
with a confession of the same. Matt. 3:6, we read, "And were
baptized of him in Jordan, confessing their sins."</p>

<p>Besides this, it is required that we should bear good
fruits."Bring forth therefore," says John, to those who desired
to be baptized,"fruits meet for repentance" (Matt. 3:8); or,
according to Biestken's translation, "Do genuine fruits of
repentance."</p>

<p>Mark 16:16, it is also required, that we believe, yea, that
we believe with the hearts. Acts 8:37.</p>

<p>In short, repentance or conversion, and baptism are joined
together, Matt. 3:6, 11; as also, teaching, believing, and
baptizing, Mark 16:15, 16. Confession and baptism went hand in
hand with the Ethiopian, Acts 8:37. Baptism is a burying of the
old man, and a sign of resurrection into a new</p>

<br /><cite>* He that is to have his son buried through
baptism, must first have died unto it through repentance: and
he that is to rise into, or walk in the new life must first
have been or walked in an old life; this is incontrovertible,
but whether it applies to infants, let the reader judge.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* It appears, therefore, that none were baptized
in Galatia, but those who had ut on Christ. Concerning this
putting on of Crist, see Rom. 13:14.</cite> 

<br /><cite>** In the ark, which was preserved through, or,
properly speaking, in the water, there were none but believing
and obedient persons, eight in number, namely, Noah and his
wife, with their three sons, Shem, Ham, and Japheth, and their
three wives, eight persons in all: likewise, none but believng
and obedient persons belong in the church of Christ, which is
compared to the ark, and which must be preserved through or in
baptism.</cite> 

</div><div id="67"> 

<p>life, Rom. 6:3, 4; a putting on of Christ, Gal. 3:27; and
the answer of a good conscience toward God. I Pet. 3:21.</p>

<p>These and other conditions required in baptism cannot exist
in infants, who know neither good nor evil, cannot discern
between the right hand and the left hand, and do as children
do, Deut. 1:39; Jno. 4:11; I Cor. 13:11.</p>

<p>Here we might adduce much more, but since it is not our
purpose to dispute about this point, but simply to show from
the unadorned testimonies of the holy evangelists and apostles,
that baptism was administered in the first century only to
adult (that is, penitent and believing) persons, we shall leave
this subject, and proceed to give an account of those who,
according to history, have, either by word or by deed,
maintained this doctrine.</p>

<h2>OF THE TESTIMONY OF THE FATHERS CONCERNING THIS ARTICLE; WHO LIVED FROM THE DECEASE OF THE APOSTLES TO THE END OF THE FIRST CENTURY</h2> 

<p>Although we might entirely conclude this first century as
touching baptism upon faith, with the testimony of Holy
Scripture, we, so as not to appear deficient, nevertheless deem
it expedient, to add the testimonies of the fathers, till the
end of this century.</p>

<p><i>About the year</i> 52. <i>Jae. Mehrn. Bapt. hist.
pag.</i> 578. from <i>Simon Metaphrastes, D.
hicecomes</i>records the following incident <i>(lib. 1.
cap.</i> 4. <i>in the life of St. Auxibius): When</i> St. Mark,
the apostle of Christ, saw that Auxibius had a desire for
Christ, and that he was believing and instructed, he descended
with him into a pool and baptized him. This is the first
example of which we read in history, outside of Holy Scripture,
of those who were incorporated into the church of Christ,
through baptism upon faith.</p>

<p><i>About the year</i> 60.-In, or very near this time, it is
recorded, even by several papistic writers, that there were
such people and such a sect as were afterwards designated by
the name, <i>The Poor of Lyons, Waldenses, Albigenses,</i> who
were also called <i>Anabaptists,</i> or <i>Baptists,</i> on
account of the like faith which they had in common; as shall be
shown hereafter. Therefore the papists complain of their being
considered of such high antiquity; for some say that they
existed in the time of Sylvester, A. D. 315, and others assert,
with more justness, too, in the time of the apostles.
<i>Baptism. hastor. pag.</i> 615, from a very old book. Also,
<i>pag.</i> 670 <i>and</i> pag. 682. <i>from Flaccius.</i>
Also, <i>D. Balthazar L,ydius</i> (though he misinterprets
their doctrine) in the tract,"Where the church was before the
year 1160," printed at <i>Dort, A.</i> 1624. <i>pag.</i> 2.
<i>col. 1. from Reynerius Prriester.</i></p>

<p><i>About the year</i> 68.-It is stated that in the time of
Nero, two daughters of Valentinian, a Christian at Aquileia,
who had been brought up by their father in the Christian faith
and the fear of God, were instructed by the priest or teacher
Hermagoras, and baptized at a running water. See <i>De gantsch
klare en grondige bewijsinge vam den Doop,</i> printed A. D.
[15] 81. <i>letter Bv.</i></p>

<p><i>About the year</i> 70.-In or about the time of the death
of ,the apostle Peter is placed the bishop or teacher Linus, of
whom it is testified that he baptized, after preceding
instruction, the son of Perpetua, a Christian woman. See the
above. Also, <i>Kort verhael van den loop der werelt, by F. H.
H.,</i> printed at <i>Franeker, A.</i> 1611. <i>pag.</i>
47.</p>

<p><i>From the year 71 till the year</i> 111.-It is stated that
between these years there flourished Ignatius, who was the
second bishop of Antioch after Peter, and, according to the
chronicles, discharged the duties of his office in the time of
the apostle John. Writing of baptism, he employs no other
manner</p>

<p>of speech, than which clearly implies that baptism must be
accompanied with faith, love and patience.</p>

<p>In his letter to Polycarp, bishop at Smyrna, he writes among
other things these words: Let none of you be found an
apostate, "Let your baptism be your weapon, your faith your
helmet, love a lance, patience a full armor."</p>

<p>In a letter to the Trailienses he writes likewise, "It
appears to me, that you do not live after the flesh, but after
Jesus Christ, who died for our sakes; so that you, believing in
His death, may, through baptism, be partakers of His
resurrection, "</p>

<p>Again, in the letter to those at Philadelphia he writes
thus, "Seeing, then, that there is one only ungenerated God and
Father; and one only begotten Son, Word, and Man; one
Comforter, the Spirit of Truth; and one faith, one baptism, and
one church, which the apostles have founded with their sweat
and labor, in the blood of Christ from one end of the earth to
the other; therefore, you, as a peculiar people and holy
generation, must also do all things with a unanimous heart in
Christ."</p>

<p>Who does not see here, that Ignatius by joining together in
this order or sequence, preaching, faith, baptism, and the
church, intends to say, that according to the ordinance of
Christ, preaching has the first place, and, therefore, must
precede; that after faith comes baptism, and that after baptism
the one baptized is a member of the church? and that then the
members of the church, as a peculiar people and holy
generation, must do all things with unanimous hearts in Christ?
For this is the import of the words of Ignatius. See,
concerning the aforementioned letters of Ignatius, H. Montanus
in <i>De nietigheyd van den Kinder-doop,</i> printed the second
time, <i>pages 4 and</i> 5. Also, Jac. <i>du Bois</i> (though
he misinterprets these letters), <i>Tegen Montanus,</i> printed
<i>Anno 1648. pages 16-22.</i></p>

<p><i>In the</i> year 95.-It is here recorded that Clemens, the
fourth bishop of the church at Rome, ordained:</p>

</div><div id="68"> 

<p>That the heretics' baptism is neither to be supported nor
accepted; therefore, he that has received baptism in conformity
with the truth of the church, shall not be rebaptized; but he
who does not rebaptize the unclean, that is, baptized by the
ungodly or heretics, shall be deposed, as one who mocks the
cross and death of Christ, and does not distinguish the false
priests, or teachers, from the true ones (distinct. 30. cap.).
Again, in his second epistle he speaks of baptizing on the
feast, and that the candidate for baptism is to be examined
three months previously. P. J. Tzvisck, Chron. lst Book, in the
year 95. page. 32.</p>

<p>It certainly appears clearly from these words of Clemens
that at that time no other baptism obtained in the church, than
that which was administered after preceding instruction: for
when he speaks of baptizing on the feast, and that the
candidate for baptism is to be examined three months
previously, it is certainly expressed, that then no new-born
children were baptized; for who does not know that children are
born throughout the whole year, and not only on feast days
(namely, on Easter or Pentecost)? Besides, infants cannot be
examined in the faith three months previous to their baptism,
as is required here of the candidates for baptism.</p>

<p>Moreover, in the third letter of Clemens, the following
words, which still more clearly express the preceding meaning,
are found: If any one desires to become a believer, and to be
baptized, he must prepare himself to lay aside the former
wickedness; so that he henceforth may obtain, by a good
conversation, an inheritance of the heavenly riches, according
to his own deeds. Let him that desires this, go to his priest,
or teacher, and hear from him the mysteries of the kingdom of
heaven; let him exercise himself diligently with fasting, and
examine himself well in everything, so that after three months
he may be baptized. Everyone shall be baptized in running
water, and the name of the blessed Trinity be invoked over him.
<i>Jac. Mehrn. Bapt. Histor. 2nd part, on the second century,
page</i> 209. from <i>Clem. Epist. 3.</i></p>

<p>From the <i>Constitutionibus Apostolicis, lib. 7. cap.</i>
23. by the same Clemens, these words are taken: Concerning
baptism we command you before, O bishop, and say this also:
that you shall baptize as the Lord has commanded us, when He
said, "Go, and teach all nations, baptizing them in the name of
the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost: teaching
them to observe all things whatsoever I have commanded you"
(Matt. 28:19, 20). <i>Bdpt. Histor. page</i> 200. <i>ex.
Constit. Apostol.</i></p>

<p>The above words of Clemens speak so plainly of the true
order of the baptism of Christ, that they need no explanation
whatever. We shall therefore pass on to the martyrs who
suffered in or about this time.</p>
<a name="67"></a>
<h2>AN ACCOUNT OF THE PIOUS MARTYRS AND WITNESSES OF JESUS CHRIST WHO SUFFERED DURING THE FIRST CENTURY That is, from the death of Christ to the year A. D. 100.</h2> 

<h2>SUMMARY OF THE MARTYRS OF THE FIRST CENTURY</h2> 

<p>This first century did not pass without the shedding of much
blood of the saints; for, since Jesus Christ Himself, the
leader of all true believers, was subject to it, it was just,
that His members should follow in the same path; yet John died
before Christ. But after the death of Christ, the fire of
persecution raged exceedingly, consuming nearly all of the
beloved apostles and friends of Christ, according to the flesh.
We have described those who followed Christ, their Captain,
into suffering and death, according to the order of time; they
are the following persons: Stephen, the deacon; the apostles,
James, Philip, Barnabas, Mark the evangelist, Peter, Paul; some
companions and friends of Paul, as Aristarchus, Epaphras,
Silas, Onesiphorus, Prochorus, Nicanor, Parmenas, Olympas,
Carpus, Trophimus, Ma~terus, Egyetus, Hermagoras, Onesimus,
Dionysius of Athens, and Timothy; but the latter was slain a
few years after the others. In the meantime the preceding ones
are followed by the apostles, Andrew, Bartholomew, Thomas,
Matthew, Simon Zelotes, Matthias, Luke the evangelist, Antipas,
the faithful martyr of Jesus, John, whom Jesus loved,
Urticinus, Vitalus, etc., all of whom obtained the martyr's
crown, as may be seen from the following account.</p>

<p>To Jesus Christ, the Son of God, we have accorded the first
place among the martyrs of the new covenant; not in the order
of time, for herein John was before, and preceded with his
death; but on account of the worthiness of the person, because
He is the head of all the holy martyrs, through whom they all
must be saved.</p>

<h2>JESUS CHRIST THE SON OF GOD CRUCIFIED AT JERUSALEM</h2> 

<p>About three thousand, nine hundred and seventy years after
the creation of the world, in the fortysecond year of the reign
of Augustus, the second Roman emperor, when the whole world was
at peace, Jesus Christ was born of the virgin Mary, in the
little town of Bethlehem, being the only and eternal Son of
God,. the Word by which all things are made, yea, God blessed
forever. Matt. 16:16; John 1:14, Rom. 9:5.</p>

<p>But His entrance into this world, as well as His progress
and end, was full of misery, distress and affliction, indeed it
may be said: He was born under the cross; brought up under the
cross! He</p>

</div><div id="69"> <br />
 

<p>walked under the cross, and finally died on the cross.</p>

<p>Touching His birth, He was conceived of the Holy Ghost. His
birth ushered Him into great poverty; for He was not born in
His maternal city, Nazareth, but on the journey to Bethlehem;
which was the cause, that no suitable place could be prepared
for His birth; yea, even more, He could obtain no place in the
inn, but had to be born in a stable; and when He was born, He
was wrapped in swaddling clothes, and laid in a manger.</p>

<p>Touching His bringing up, it was attended with much sorrow,
for when He was still less than two years old, Herod persecuted
Him even unto death; on account of which His foster-father
Joseph, and His mother Mary, had to flee into Egypt, and remain
there until Herod's death. But meanwhile there were killed in
His stead, that He also might be killed, all the children of
two years and under, in and about Bethlehem, so that the voice
of lamentation was heard in all the boundaries of that region;
of which Jeremiah had prophesied, "A voice was heard in Ramah,
lamentation, and bitter weeping; Rachel weeping for her
children refused to be comforted for her children, because they
were not." Jer. 31:15; fulfilled, Matt. 2:18. As regards His
life and conversation among men, He was considered an
enthusiast and vagrant, because He had no permanent place of
abode; which latter was nevertheless thus bitter for Him, that
He complains, "Foxes have holes, and birds of the air have
nests; but the Son of man hath not where to lay his head" (Luke
9:58) . Meanwhile He was reproached as being the friend of
publicans and sinners, a glutton and wine bibber, yea. that He
was possessed with the devil; and this, until the hour of His
departure was nigh at hand.</p>

<p>Concerning the end of His life, it was the most miserable,
for it was, so to speak, the day, when all the fountains of the
great deep broke forth over Him, and the floods of suffering
overflowed Him, to swallow Him up altogether.</p>

<p>First of all, He was betrayed by His disciple Judas, who
sold Him for thirty pieces of silver to the high priests and
Pharisees. Matt. 26:14-16. Then He was delivered unto them,
sharply examined, yea adjured by the living God, to say,
whether He was the Christ, the Son of God. And as soon as the
Lord had confessed this, thcy cried,"He is guilty of
death."</p>

<p>Then they spit in His face, and buffeted Him. Others covered
His face, saying,"Prophesy unto</p>

</div><div id="70"> 

<p>us, thou Christ, Who is he that smote thee?" (Matt. 27:67,
68). This having continued till about morning, they delivered
Him to Pontius Pilate, the judge, to pronounce the sentence of
death upon Him, and to put an end to His life. Matt. 27:1,
2.</p>

<p>Pilate said,"What accusation bring ye against this man?"
They answered,"If he were not a malefactor, we would not have
delivered him up unto thee." Pilate said,"Take ye Him, and
judge him according to your law;" for he perceived that for
envy they had delivered Him. They answered,"He perverts the
nation, and forbids to give tribute to Caesar, saying that He
Himself is a king. In short, 'We have a law, and by our law he
ought to die, because he made himself the Son of God.'" (John
19:7).</p>

<p>Thereupon Pilate took Jesus into the judgment hall, and,
having examined Him, said, that he found no cause of death in
Him. Therefore he sought a means to release Him; moreover, in
order to move the Jews to pity on account of His innocence, he
caused Him (though against his conscience) to be terribly
scourged, crowned with thorns, mocked, and, thus disfigured,
brought before the Jews, saying,"Behold the man I" so that they
might now be satisfied with His suffering, and spare His life.
But it was of no avail; they cried the more,"Crucify him,
crucify him; if thou let this man go, thou art not Caesar's
friend." Verse 12.</p>

<p>Finally, when Pilate saw that the Jews were not to be moved,
and fearing that they might accuse him before Caesar, he went
and sat down (at about eight o'clock in the morning, according
to our reckoning) in the judgment seat, in the place called
<i>Lithostratos,</i> and in Hebrew <i>Gabbatha,</i> a paved
elevation in Jerusalem; and there, though quite against his
conscience, pronounced the sentence of death upon Christ.</p>

<p>Thereupon the soldiers again very dreadfully mocked Him,
laid His cross upon Him, and drove Him out through the gate up
to Mount Calvary, where they, after having stripped Him of His
garments, nailed Him to a cross, and raised Him up between two
murderers, John 19:18; which was done, according to our
reckoning, at about nine o'clock in the morning.</p>

<p>In the meantime they gave Him vinegar and gall to drink,
parted His garments, and again derided Him most shamefully and
above measure, till a great darkness came, continuing for about
three hours; and then the Lord cried with a loud voice,"Eli,
Eli, lama sabachthani!" that is,"My God, my God, why hast thou
forsaken me?" (Matt. 27:46).</p>

<p>Then, having fulfilled all, He commended His soul into His
Father's hands, saying,"Father, into thy hands I commend my
spirit" (Luke 23:46) .</p>

<p>Thereupon He bowed His head and expired, having suffered
excruciatingly six hours on the cross, from nine o'clock in the
morning till three in the afternoon.*</p>

<p>Then the earth began to quake, the rocks were rent, the
graves were opened, the vail of the temple was rent in twain,
and many miracles happened, as a sign that He who died there
was more than a common man, yea, that He was the Son of the
living God.</p>

<p>This, then, was the end, not of a martyr, but of the Head of
all the holy martyrs, through whom they and we all must be
saved.</p>

<h2>JOHN THE BAPTIST, SON OF ZACHARIAS AND ELISABETH, BEHEADED IN THE CASTLE OF MACHAERUS, AT THE COMMAND OF HEROD ANTIPAS, A. D. 32</h2> 

<p>This John, surnamed the Baptist, because he was ordained of
God to baptize the penitent, the son of the priest Zacharias,
and his wife Elisabeth; whose name was made known to his
parents through the angel of God, before he was born. Luke
1:5,13.</p>

<p>When he was about thirty years old (about six months before
the Lord Jesus Christ began to preach), in the fifteenth year
of the reign of Tiberias Caesar, Pontius Pilate being governor,
and Annas and Caiaphas the high priests, he was called and sent
of God, to preach the baptism of repentance for the remission
of sins, to prepare the way for the Messiah, as an angel or
messenger before the face of Christ, to turn the hearts of the
fathers to the children. Luke 3:1, 2; Mark 1:2,3; Luke
1:17.</p>

<p>Of the dignity of this man the angel of the Lord had said,
that many would rejoice at his birth, that he would be great in
the sight of the Lord, to make ready a people well-prepared (as
not only the prophets, but also Zacharias had prophesied of him
through the Spirit of the Most High), to give knowledge of
salvation unto the people of the Lord for the remission of
their sins. Luke 1:14,15, 77.</p>

<p>John, being thus sent of God, to bear witness of Christ,
that He is the true light, came to the Jordan, at Salim, and
other places, teaching and baptizing. John 3:23.</p>

<p>In the meantime, while he was baptizing the penitent, Christ
Himself came to him (to confirm this holy work), and asked to
be baptized by him. But when John, from humility and good
intention, declined, Christ instructed him that this was
neces</p>

<br /><cite>* That the Lord lived six hours, yea, more than
six hours on the cross, before He gave up the ghost, appears
from the account of Mark, chap. 15; for inverse 25 it says, "And
it was the third hour, and they crucified him." That is
according to our reckoning, nine o'clock in the morning. Then,
in verse 33, we are told that when the sixth hour was come,
there was darkness over the whole land until the ninth hour;
which according to our reckoning, was twelve o'clock noon.
Then, in verse 34 we read, "And at the ninth hour Jesus cried
with a loud voice, saying, Eloi Eloi lama sabachthani, that is;
My God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me?" which, according to
our way of reckoning time, is three o'clock in the afernoon.
gain in verse 37, we read, "Ad Jesus cried with a loud voice,
and gave up the ghost;" which, as it appears, happened after
the expiration of the ninth hour, so that the Lord lived on the
cross from nine o'clock in the morning until three oclock in
the afternoon, that is, fully six hours, and not before then
did He give up the ghost, as has been shown from the account of
Mark.</cite> 

</div><div id="71"> 

<p>sary, saying,"Suffer it to be so now: for thus it becometh
us to fulfill all righteousness." Then he baptized the Lord.
Matt. 3:13-16.</p>

<p>He held the Lord Jesus in high estimation, calling Him the
Lamb of God, the Bridegroom of His church, the true Messiah,
whose shoes he was not worthy to bear. John 1:29; 3:29; Matt.
3:11.</p>

<p>He himself possessed such great influence, though in
humility, that many were in doubt whether he was not himself
the Messiah; hence the Pharisees sent their messengers to him,
to inquire of him his vocation, mission, authority, etc. To all
this he answered candidly and with an humble heart, saying,"I
am not the Christ." John 1:19, 20.</p>

<p>When the course of his pilgrimage drew near its close, a
certain matter occurred, which was the cause of his death, and
happened as follows: King Herod Antipas had committed a wicked
deed; namely, he had taken his brother Philip's wife, having
put away his own wife, the daughter of Aretas, king of Arabia;
which conduct John the Baptist, on account of his ministry,
could not let go unreproved, but called Herod's attention to
it, according to the law, saying,"It is not lawful for thee to
have her" (Matt. 14:4).</p>

<p>However, even as the ungodly will not be reproved, so it was
with Herod; for he conceived a hatred for John, and sought
opportunity to kill him. But, since many had a very high
opinion of this pious man, and great numbers, therefore, came
to him, Herod, for the present, did not dare to lay hands on
him, to kill him; however he did not let him go free, but
imprisoned him in the castle of Machaerus. <i>Euseb. Hist. Eccl
lib. 1 chap 11.</i></p>

<p>In the meantime John did not relax in his calling, but even
from prison sent some of his disciples to Christ, that they
with the others might assure themselves through the doctrine
and the miracles which they would there hear and see, that
Christ, and none other, was the true Messiah. Matt. 11:2; Luke
7:18.</p>

<p>Thereupon, not only when these messengers came, but also on
many other occasions, Christ testified of the greatness and
worthiness of John the Baptist; namely, that he was the true
spiritual Elias, a burning and shining light, the greatest
prophet among all those born of women. Matt. 11:14; John 5:35;
Luke 7:28.</p>

<p>Time went on, meanwhile, and the hour of his departure was
near at hand. As regards the circumstances of his death, they
are thus described by the holy evangelist Matthew, chap.
14:3-12, "For Herod had laid hold on John, and bound him, and
put him in prison for Herodias' sake, his brother Philip's
wife. For John said unto him, It is not lawful for thee to have
her. And when he would have put him to death, he feared the
multitude, because they counted him as a prophet. But when
Herod's birthday was kept, the daughter of Herodias danced
before them, and pleased Herod. Whereupon he promised with an
oath to give her whatsoever she would ask. And she, being
before instructed of her mother, said, Give me here John
Baptist's head in a charger. And the king was sorry:
nevertheless for the oath's sake, and them which sat with him
at meat, he commanded it to be given. her. And he sent, and
beheaded John in the prison. And his head was brought in a
charger, and given to the damsel: and she brought it to her
mother. And his disciples came, and took up the body, and
buried it, and went and told Jesus."</p>

<p>Josephus, the Jewish historian, also makes mention of the
death of John the Baptist, in the 7th chapter of the 18th book
of his history of the Jews, where he writes thus, "There was a common report among the Jews, that Herod's army
was. destroyed through the righteous judgment of God, on
account of John, who is called the Baptist. For Herod, the
tetrarch, caused this pious man to be slain; who exhorted the
Jews to all manner of virtue and righteousness, led them to
baptism, and said, that their baptism would only then be
acceptable to God, if they would abstain, not merely from one
or two sins, but would earnestly purify the heart, through
righteousness, and afterwards also the body., "Since great numbers flocked to him, and the people were
very eager for his doctrine, Herod feared, lest he (John) might
induce the people, with whom his influence was great, to
sedition; for it seemed, as if they would do everything
according to his will and counsel. He therefore thought it
best, to have him killed. For that reason he caused him to be
imprisoned in the aforesaid castle Machaerus, and there put to
death."</p>

<p>This happened, according to our reckoning, in the year
thirty-two after the birth of Christ, in the seventeenth year
of Tiberias, the Roman emperor; and thus was this great light
of the church of God extinguished in the midst of its
brightness, to the sorrow of many pious hearts.</p>

<p>It is stated that his body rested at Sebasta, in Palestine,
till the time of Julian, when his bones were burned by the
enemies of truth, and his ashes scattered to the wind. Histor.
Tripart. <i>lib. 1. cap. 15. Theod. lib. 3. carp. 6.</i></p>

<h2>STEPHEN, ONE OF THE SEVEN DEACONS OF THE CHURCH AT JERUSALEM, STONED WITHOUT THE GATE OF THE CITY, BY THE LIBERTINES, A. D. <i>34,</i> SHORTLY AFTER THE DEATH OF CHRIST</h2> 

<p>Stephen, which in Greek signifies a crown, was one of the
seven deacons of the church at Jerusalem, a man full of faith
and the wisdom of God. Acts <i>6:5.</i></p>

<p>He was well versed in the holy Scriptures of the Old
Testament, and very eloquent. It happened that there arose
certain of the sect of the Libertines, Cyrenians, Alexandrians,
and of them of Cilicia and of Asia, and disputed with Stephen;
and they were not able to resist the wisdom and the</p>

</div><div id="72"> <br />
 

<p>spirit by which he spake. Then they suborned a few men to
say: We have heard him speak blasphemous words against Moses,
and against God. And they stirred up the people, and the
elders, and the scribes, and came upon him, and caught him, and
brought him to the council, and set up false witnesses, to say,
This man ceaseth not to speak blasphemous words against this
holy place, and the law: for we have heard him say, that this
Jesus of Nazareth shall destroy this place, and shall change
the customs which Moses delivered us. And all that sat in the
council, looking steadfastly on him, saw his face, as it had
been the face of an angel. Acts 6:9-15.</p>

<p>Then said the high priest to him, Are these things so?
Thereupon, this godfearing man explained himself and answered
with many reasons; he, moreover, adduced, as if with a heavenly
tongue, and with incontrovertible reasons, many scriptures of
the Old Testament, to show that Christ is the true Messiah, and
that the Gospel is true. Acts 7: 1-53.</p>

<p>But when he began to speak with great warmth, and to set
before the eyes of his accusers their bloodthirstiness, their
wrath was kindled the more against him, for these things cut
them to the heart, and they gnashed on him with their teeth.
Verse 54.</p>

<p>But he, being full of the Holy Ghost, looked up into heaven,
and saw the glory of God, and Jesus standing at the right hand
of God, and said: Behold, I see the heavens opened, and the Son
of man standing on the right hand of God. Verses 55 and 56.</p>

<p>But they cried out with a loud voice, and stopped their
ears, and ran upon him with one accord, and cast him out of the
city, and stoned him; and the witnesses laid down their clothes
at a young man's feet, whose name was Saul. Verses 57 and
58.</p>

<p>In the meantime he called and said, Lord Jesus, receive my
spirit. He kneeled down, and cried with a loud voice, Lord, lay
not this sin to their charge. And when he had said this, he
fell asleep. Verses 59 and 60.</p>

<p>Such was the end of this upright man Stephen, to whom the
honor of Jesus Christ was dearer than his own life. It is
stated to have taken place in the year thirty-four after the
birth of Christ, in the nineteenth year of the reign of
Tiberius, which was the thirty-eighth year of his age. It
happened in the seventh year after the baptism of Christ.
<i>Nic. lib.</i> 2. cap. 3,</p>

</div><div id="73"> 

<p>This having occurred, some godfearing men attended to the
body, and carried it to the grave, greatly lamenting this pious
martyr.-The stones were to him as rivers of sweetness.
<i>August. cap. 22.</i> Sold.</p>

<h2>JAMES, THE SON OF ZEBEDEE, PUT TO DEATH WITH THE SWORD, BY HEROD AGRIPPA, IN JERU SALEM, A. D. <i>45</i></h2> 

<p>James, surnamed the Greater, was the son of Zebedee and
Salome, and a fisherman by occupation; but, Christ having
called him to be His disciple, he abandoned fishing, and
followed Christ. Matt. <i>4:21;</i> Mark 1:19.</p>

<p>He was instructed for a considerable time together with the
other disciples in the duties of the apostleship, until he was
properly sent out in that capacity. Matt. 10:<i>2;</i> Mark
<i>6:17; Luke 6:13.</i></p>

<p>He was endowed with the gift of working signs and miracles,
and on account of this special gift he was one of the three
surnamed <i>Boanerges,</i> that is, sons of <i>thunder.</i> He
was with Jesus on every remarkable occasion; so much so, that
he was chosen by the Lord to behold His glory upon the holy
mount; and, afterwards, to witness His suf ferings in the
garden of Gethsemane. Mark <i>3:17,</i> 18; Matt. <i>17:1;
26:36.</i></p>

<p>Of him Christ had predicted, that he should drink of the
same cup, of which He (Christ) would drink, and that he should
be baptized with the same baptism, with which He was baptized;
that is, that he should be subject to His (Christ's) suffering
and death. Matt. <i>20:22, 23.</i></p>

<p>After the death of Christ he joined the other apostles, to
be a witness with them, of His suffering, death, and
resurrection, and to be instructed concerning His kingdom
during the forty days after His resurrection.</p>

<p>After Christ's ascension he also remained at Jerusalem; and
when he, together with the other apostles, had there received
the Holy Ghost, he preached the Gospel in Judea and Samaria.
Acts <i>1:13,14.</i></p>

<p>From there, as some relate, he went to Spain; but, meeting
with little success, he returned to Judea, where, it is said,
he was opposed by Hermogenes, a sorcerer. But as Abdias, bishop
of Babylon, and others, relate many things of him, which seem
to be altogether fictitious, we shall not mention them.
<i>Petr. de nat. lib. 6. cap. 133. Abdias Babyl. van den Strijd
der Apostelen.</i></p>
 </div><div id="74"> 


<p>This apostle lived only until the fourth year of the Emperor
Claudius, at which time, Agabus had predicted, there should be
a dearth throughout all the world. Oros. <i>lib. 7. carp.
6.</i></p>

<p>At that time Claudius charged Herod Agrippa to suppress the
church of Christ. Then Herod laid his bloody hands on this
apostle and, on the feast of the passover, put him in prison.
Shortly afterwards he was sentenced to death, and executed with
the sword, in Jerusalem. This occurred in the year forty-five
after the birth of Christ. Acts 12:2.</p>

<p>Clemens relates that the executioner, seeing his innocence,
was converted to the Christian faith, and died with him.
According to the annotation of Eusebius Pamphilius, from
Clemens Alexandrinus, the executioner was so moved on account
of the death of James, that he professed himself to be a
Christian; and so, as he states, both were led forth together
to death. As they were led out, the executioner asked James to
forgive him. James, after a little deliberation, said,"Peace be
with thee," and kissed him. And thus both were beheaded.
<i>Euseb. lib.</i> 2. <i>cap. 9. ex Clem. Alexand. Also W.
Baudart. Apophthegmat. lib. 1. page 4.</i> from Joach.
<i>Camer. in vita Christi, page 42.</i> <i>Niceph. lib. 2. cap.
3. Strac. in Festo Jacobi, page 209. Cie.</i> Circa, <i>cap.
45. Annum.</i> James was the first martyr of the apostles. This
history shows the alacrity of the ancient believers.</p>

<h2>THE HOLY APOSTLE PHILIP, BOUND WITH HIS HEAD TO A PILLAR, AND STONED, AT HIE RAPOLIS, IN PHRYGIA, A. D. <i>54</i></h2> 

<p>Philip, a native of Bethsaida, in Galilee, had a wife and
daughters of very honorable life. John <i>1:44;</i> 12:21;
<i>Euseb. Hist. Eccles. lib. 3. cap. 30; 31.</i></p>

<p>He was found of Christ, and called as His disciple to follow
Him; which he did so faithfully, that when he found Nathanael,
he brought him to Christ, declaring to him, that he had found
Him of whom Moses and the prophets had written, namely, Jesus
of Nazareth, the true Messiah. John <i>1:45.</i></p>

<p>From that time on, Philip constantly followed Christ,
listening to His admonitions, and beholding the miracles He
performed to the service of the word of God; so that Christ
ordained him an apostle, and sent him out to preach the Gospel,
in the first place to the scattered sheep of the house</p>

</div><div id="75"> 

<p>of Israel; which he also like his fellow apostles did. Matt.
10:3; Luke 6:13-15.</p>

<p>The Lord esteemed him as one of His greatest friends; for at
the glorious miracle of the feeding of five thousand, Christ,
in order to prove him, counseled with him, saying,"Whence shall
we buy bread, that these may eat?" (John 6:5) .</p>

<p>He was also kindly instructed by the Lord, when he asked to
see the Father; for Christ said to him,</p>

<p>Philip, he that hath seen me hath seen the Father, etc. John
14:8, 9.</p>

<p>Once when certain Greeks wished to see Jesus, and desired
him to procure them access to the Lord, he came with Andrew and
told it to the Lord, who answered,"The hour is come, that the
Son of man should be glorified" (John 12:20-23) .</p>

<p>This pious and godly apostle remained with the Lord, even to
His suffering; and, after their dispersion, when Christ had
arisen, he abode with his brethren, until they, according to
the promise of Christ, received the Holy Ghost, after His
ascension. Luke 24:32, 33; Acts 2:4.</p>

<p>After the distribution of the countries, he taught several
years in Scythia, where he planted many churches; and since
Syria and the upper part of Asia fell to his particular share,
he laid the founda ions of faith in many of these cities.
<i>Pet. de Nat. lib.</i> 4. crap. 107. Nic. <i>lib.</i> 2.
<i>cap.</i> 39.</p>

<p>Finally he came to Phrygia, and wrought several signs at
Hierapolis. There the Ebionites, who not only denied the
divinity of Christ, but also worshiped idols, continued
obstinately in their blasphemous doctrines and idolatry, and
did not listen to this pious apostle of Christ, but apprehended
him, and, having made his head fast to a pillar, stoned him;
whereupon death ensued, and he thus fell asleep in the Lord.
His body was buried in the aforementioned city Hierapolis.
<i>Konst-tooneel,</i> van <i>veertigh heerlijke afbeeldingen
Christi, ende sijner Apostelen,</i> etc. In the life of Philip.
<i>Bybelsch Naembceck van P. J. Tzeisk, letter P.</i> on the
name <i>Philippus, fol.</i> 762. col. 2. Also, <i>Introduction
to the Martyrs' Mirror of the Baptists,</i> printed in the year
1631, fol. 35. col. 1.</p>

<h2>JAMES, THE SON OF ALPHEUS, OR BROTHER OF THE LORD, CAST DOWN FROM THE TEMPLE, STONED, AND BEATEN TO DEATH WITH A CLUB, A. D. 63</h2> 

<p>James the Lesser was the son of Alpheus, and Mary Cleophas,
sister to the mother of Christ; he is called the Lord's
brother. Matt. 10:3; Gal. 1:19.</p></div><div id="
 76"> <br />

<p>After proper instruction he was ordained an apostle by
Christ, and sent out to minister to the Jews; wherein he
acquitted himself well, until Christ's death. After that, he,
with others, was sent out to preach the Gospel, which he did in
the Jewish church. Matt. 28:19; Mark 16:15.</p>

<p>And although Peter, and James and his brother John, of whom
the last-mentioned two were the sons of Zebedee, were regarded
as the special apostles, he was nevertheless considered to be
one of the three pillars of the church, after the death of
James the son of Zebedee, Gal. 2:9.</p>

<p>He was appointed by the apostles the first overseer of the
church at Jerusalem; this was shortly after the death of
Christ. <i>Euseb. lib.</i> 4. <i>cap.</i> 5. <i>and lib.</i> 2.
<i>cap.</i> 23. This office he discharged faithfully for thirty
years, converting many to the true faith, not only (though
principally) by the pure doctrine of Christ, but also through
his holy life, on account of which he was called the just.
<i>Niceph. lib.</i> 2. carp. 38.</p>

<p>He was very steadfast and holy, a true Nazarite, in dress as
well as in eating and drinking; and prayed daily for the church
of God and the common weal.</p>

<p>This apostle wrote an epistle for the consolation of the
twelve tribes who were scattered abroad, saying: James, a
servant of God and of the Lord Jesus Christ, to the twelve
tribes which are scattered abroad, greeting. My brethren, count
it all joy when ye fall into divers temptations. James 1:1,
2.</p>

<p>But although he comforted with many excellent reasons his
own, who believed in the name of Christ, the unbelieving Jews
could not endure his doctrine; so that Ananias, an audacious
and cruel young man among them, being the high priest, summoned
him before the judges, that they should compel him to deny that
Jesus is the Christ, and force him to renounce the Son of God
and the power of His resurrection. <i>Josep. Antiq. lib.</i>
20. <i>cap.</i> 8. <i>Euseb. lib.</i> 2. <i>cap. 1. verse</i>
22. ex <i>Egesipp. Hieron. Catal.</i></p>

<p>To this end, the chief priest, scribes, and Pharisees placed
him upon the pinnacle of the temple, at the time of the
passover, that he should deny his faith before all the people.
But as he thus stood before the people, he confessed with much
more boldness that Jesus Christ is the promised Messiah, the
Son of God, our Saviour, and that he is sitting at the right
hand of God, and shall come again in the clouds of heaven, to
judge the quick and the dead.</p>

<p>On account of this testimony of James, the multitude of the
people praised God, and magnified the name of Christ. Then
cried the enemies of the truth, Oh, the just also has erred;
let us take him away for he is unprofitable. They accordingly
cast him down, and stoned him. But as he was not killed by the
fall and the stoning, having only broken his legs, he, lying on
his knees, prayed to God for those who stoned him, saying,
Lord, forgive them; for they know not what they do. On account
of this, one of the priests begged for his life, saying, What
do ye? the Just is praying for us. Leave off stoning I But
another of those present, who held a fuller's stick in his
hand, struck him over the head with it, so that he died, and
fell asleep in the Lord. He was buried at the place where he
had been thrown down from the temple. <i>Hieron. Catalog. in
Jacobo Justo.</i> Also, W. <i>Baudart. Apophthegmat. lib. 1.
cent;.</i> 6. <i>ex Euseb. Pamphil. Ccesariense, in hist.
Eccl. Strac. in Festo Philippi and Jacobi, p.</i> 133.
<i>Anno</i> 62. C. <i>Aetat. Jacobi.</i></p>

<p>This occurred A. D. 63, in the ninety-sixth year of his age,
in the seventh year of the reign of Nero, during an interim in
the governorship between the death of Festus and the arrival of
Albinus, under the high priest Ananias, who perpetrated this
lamentable deed on James.</p>

<p>Concerning this James the following is contained in the
Apophthegms of Baudartius, "He was on his bare knees so often
and for such long periods, praying to the Lord God for the
remission of the sins of the people, that his knees were so
hard and callous, that there was no sensation in them at all.
<i>lib. 1. p. 7._</i> O the great and constant piety of this
holy martyr!</p>

<h2>BARNABAS, A COMPANION OF THE APOSTLE PAUL, DRAGGED OUT OF THE CITY AND BURNED, AT SALAMINA IN CYPRUS, A. D. 64</h2> 

<p>Barnabas, also called Barsabas, and surnamed Joseph, Joses,
or Justus, was a Levite from Cyprus, full of the Holy Ghost. He
was called the son of consolation, and such a one he indeed
proved himself to the poor saints. Acts 11:24; 1:23; 4:36;
<i>Euseb. hilt. Eccl. lib.</i> 2. cap. 1.</p>

<p>It is maintained that he was one of the seventy disciples of
Christ, and from the multiplicity of his names we can see his
renown and eminence; which latter he gained by his zeal and
piety; for he brought Paul, after his conversion, to the
apostles; and when the Word of God was preached to the
Grecians, at Antioch, by some men from Cyprus and Cyrene, he
was sent by the apostles to investigate the matter; and when he
found it to be so, he confirmed them in the truth. Acts 9:27;
11:20-23.</p>

<p>After this he went to Tarsus, to seek Paul, and brought him
to Antioch, where they remained a whole year teaching. Also,
when the dearth arose under emperor Claudius, he and Paul
brought substantial relief to the brethren who dwelt in Judea.
Acts 11:25, 26, 29, 30; <i>Oros. lib. 7. cap. 6. Euseb. hist.
Eccl. lib.</i> 2. cap. 3. 9.</p>

<p>On his return to Antioch, he was sent out by the Holy Ghost,
to preach in many countries. On account of his eloquence he was
frequently the speaker; yea, he was held in such high regard,
and was so godly, that the Gentiles at Lystra cried in the
speech of Lycaonia, that he was a god, and had come down from
heaven, and called him Jupiter.</p>

</div><div id="77"> 

<p>And this was not all; but the priest of that place came with
oxen wearing garlands, and desired to do sacrifice to him and
Paul. But he and his companion Paul utterly declined this,
saying,"Sirs, why do ye these things? We also are men of like
passions with you, and preach unto you that you should turn
from these vanities unto the living God." Acts 12:25; 13:4-6;
14:1, 2, 11,12,15.</p>

<p>Afterwards, when certain men came from Judea, and troubled
the brethren, saying,"Except ye be circumcised after the manner
of Moses, ye cannot be saved," he and his aforementioned
companion vigorously opposed them, according to the teaching of
the holy Gospel; wherefore he and several other pious men were
appointed to go to Jerusalem, to the apostles and elders, to
bring said matter to a good termination. When they arrived at
Jerusalem, he and the others were received joyfully by the
apostles and the church; yea, what is still more, they
testified of him and his companion Paul, that they were men who
had hazarded their lives for the truth; which indeed was
apparent. Acts 15:1, 26. For, when he came to Salamina, a large
city in the island of Cyprus, at this day called Famagosta, to
strengthen the church at that place in the faith, he was very
badly treated, as ancient history tells us, by a Jewish
sorcerer, who stirred up all the other Jews and the whole
people against him, so that they apprehended him in an uproar,
and were about to bring him to the judge, but fearing that the
judge discovering his innocence, would perhaps release him,
they, after treating him lamentably, put a rope around his
neck, dragged him out of the city, and burned him. <i>Anton. p.
1. t.</i> 6. <i>cap. 18. Sabell. Eu. 7. lib.</i> 2.</p>

<p>Thus was this faithful servant of Christ honored with the
martyr's crown, in his fatherland, and fell asleep happy in the
Lord, about the time that James the Just was slain at
Jerusalem, under Emperor Nero; however, before the publication
of the first heathen persecution, which began shortly after the
burning of Rome. <i>Plat. in vita Petri. and Pauli. Bybelsch
Naembcpk, p.</i> 158, 159. <i>letter B. ujt hilt. Andr.
fol.</i> 8.</p>

</div><div id="78"> 

<h2>HOW MARK, THE HOLY EVANGELIST, DRAGGED TO THE STAKE AT ALEXANDRIA, DIED ON THE WAY, A. D. 64</h2> 

<p>The holy evangelist Mark is supposed by most to have been
that Mark whose surname in Holy Scripture is John. He was of
the circumcision, and a nephew of Barnabas, whose mother was
called Mary, a very godly woman, who gave her house in
Jerusalem for the assembling of Christians. Acts 12:12; Col.
4:10. <i>Niceph. lib.</i> 2. <i>cap.</i> 33.</p>

<p>He was first appointed a servant of Paul and Barnabas, but
on a journey to Pamphylia he returned to Jerusalem. Acts 12:25;
13:13.</p>

<p>Afterwards the apostle Paul recommended him to the church at
Colosse, requesting them to receive him as a fellow worker in
the kingdom of God. He also commanded Timothy, to bring Mark to
him, since he was very profitable to him in his ministry. Col.
4:10; II Tim. 4:11.</p>

<p>This Mark was in prison with Paul, and rendered him all
faithful assistance in his bonds. Philem. verses 23, 24.</p>

<p>The apostle Peter in his epistle to the elect scattered
strangers, calls Mark his son, I Pet. 5:13; undoubtedly,
because through the Gospel, he had regenerated him in Christ;
or, because he was his disciple, interpreter, and the writer of
the Gospel which he had taught; of which latter circumstance
Jerome speaks thus, "Mark, a disciple of Peter, at the request
of the brethren at Rome, wrote a brief Gospel, according to
that which he had heard Peter relate. When Peter had examined
it, he pronounced it good. and upon his word gave it to the
church to read." <i>Catalog. Marc. ex Cl. Al Hypor.</i> 6.
Also, <i>Euseb. lib.</i> 2. <i>cap. 18, ex Clem Al. and Papio
Hierapolit.</i></p>

<p>Afterwards when Mark was sent by Peter to Egypt, he traveled
<i>through</i> Aquilea, the capital city of Friol, where he
converted many to the faith, and left Hermagoras as pastor over
the church. <i>Avent. au. Boi. lib.</i> 2.</p>

<p>Then he journeyed to Africa, filling Lybia, Marmorica,
Ammonica, and Pentapolis with the doctrine of the holy Gospel.
Finally he remained several years at Alexandria, where he made
his abode. <i>Nic. lib.</i> 2. <i>cap.</i> 43 <i>A thaw. in
Synopsi.</i></p>

<p>Concerning the end of his life, Gelasius states, that he
died there as a martyr. <i>Concil. Rom Deer. de lib. Auth. and
Apocr. Niceph. lib.</i> 2. <i>cap.</i> 43.</p>

<p>Mark, he writes, having been sent by Peter to</p>
 </div><div id="79">  

<p>Egypt, faithfully preached the Word of truth there, and
nobly sealed the testimony thereof with his blood. All the
ancient and modern, Greek and Latin, martyrologies agree with
this.</p>

<p>Histories state the following concerning the manner of his
death: That in the eighth year of Nero, when he, at the feast
of the passover, preached the blessed remembrance of the
suffering and death of Christ, to the church at Alexandria, the
heathen priests and the whole populace seized him, and with
hooks and ropes which they fastened around his body, dragged
him out of the congregation, through the streets and out of the
city; so that his flesh everywhere adhered to the stones, and
his blood was poured out upon the earth, until he, with the
last words of our Saviour, committed his spirit into the hands
of the Lord, and expired. <i>Anton. p. 1. cap.</i> 6. 16.
<i>Procop. Dia Metaphr. Ado.</i> 25. <i>Apr. de Fest.
Apost.</i></p>

<p>Another ancient writer relates: That he was dragged very
inhumanly through the streets, his whole body torn open, so
that there was not a single spot on it, which did not bleed;
.and that they then again thrust him, still alive, into prison,
whence he, having been strengthened and comforted by the Lord
in the night, was taken.out again, and dragged to the place
Buculi, they jestingly saying,"Let us lead the buffalo to the
buffalostall." <i>Konst-tooneel der veertig heerlijke
afbeeldingen Christi en der postelen, printed Anno</i> 1609.
Alos, <i>Bybelsch Nwmboek, printed Anno</i> 1632, <i>letter M.
p.</i> 642. col. 1. 2.</p>

<p>Death having ensued meanwhile, the aforementioned heathen
wanted, moreover, to burn him; but as they were prevented by a
storm, the Christians buried him. This happened, according to
common reckoning, in the eighth year of Nero's reign, A. D. 64,
on the 21st day of April.</p>

 
<h1>OF THE TEN BLOODY PERSECUTIONS WHICH THE CHRISTIANS SUFFERED UNDER THE HEA THEN EMPERORS OF ROME; THE FIRST OF WHICH BEGAN IN THE REIGN OF NERO, A. D. 66</h1>

<h2>THE FIRST PERSECUTION OF THE CHRISTIANS, UNDER NERO, ANNO 66</h2> 

<p>When the Jews were deprived of their power, by the heathen,
and their time was past, in which they had persecuted and slain
the saints of God, the Lord God nevertheless suffered His
church to be visited by the refining fire of presecution,
namely, through the power of the heathen; of whom the Emperor
Nero was the first tyrant. <i>Introduction to the Mirror of the
Anabaptist Martyrs, printed Anno</i> 1631. p. 35. col 2.</p>

<p>This Nero, according to the testimony of Emperor Trajan,
governed the monarchy of Rome in so laudable a manner during
the first five years of his reign, that never an emperor had
greater praise than he; for then he was so tenderhearted, hat
when he was asked to sign the death warrant, of a highwayman,
he replied,"Oh, that I could not write I" signifying thereby
his aversion to the killing. of human beings. <i>Trajan. in
Tract.</i> Also, <i>Roomschen Adelaer, door D. P. Pers, printed
Anno</i> 1642, p. 100. <i>in the life of Nero.</i> Also,
<i>Suet. in Neron. cap. 10.</i></p>

<p>But after the first five years he became so full of hatred,
murder, and bloodshedding, that he seemed to delight in nothing
more, than in killing, murdering, and fearfully torturing, not
only malefactors, but even the saints of God who were praised
even among their enemies for their Godfearing walk and
conversation.</p>

<p>I will not mention the cruelties and tyrannies he exercised
against his own friends; how he had his beloved son Britannicus
-poisoned, and his own mother Agrippina cut open, to see the
place where he had lain; how he had his faithful wife, Octavia,
put to death with the sword, because she was barren; and
Seneca, his faithful teacher, bled to death, and poisoned. We
will only speak of the persecutions and unheard-of cruelties he
practiced on the beloved friends of God, namely, the true
Christians. To this end we will begin thus</p>

<p>Once, desiring to see the burning of Troy represented by its
equal, he caused the city of Rome to be set on fire, and
ascended a certain tower without, where he, beholding it, began
to sing,"Troy is on fire," etc. <i>Suet. Idem. in Ner. cap. 38.
Rom. Adel. p. 102. in the life of Nero.</i></p>

<p>After this was done he cast the blame on the Christians,
saying that they had done it; for, when the Romans, very much
agitated on account of the immeasurable damage and the dire
calamities which had sprung from this conflagration, began to
murmur greatly, he, in order to shield himself, and to wreak
his prejudiced hatred upon the Christians, put the whole blame
on them. <i>Introduction to the Martyrs Mirror, p.</i> 35,
<i>from Baron. Anno</i> 66. <i>num. 1.</i></p>

<p>For this reason there were proclaimed immediately, in the
name of the Emperor, throughout the whole known world (then
under the monarchy of the Romans), bloody decrees against the
Christians, that they should everywhere be put to death. The
contents of these decrees were as follows, "If any one confesses
that he is a Christian, he shall be put to death, without
further trial, as a convicted enemy of mankind." loh. Gysii
<i>Hist Mart. edit. 1657. fol. 6. col. 2.</i></p>

<p>Tertullian afterwards upbraided the Roman Senate,
saying, "Read your own histories, and you will find, that Nero
was the first who raged against this sect (so he calls the
Christians), which then flourished the most in Rome." AQol.
Contra <i>Gentes. cap. 5.</i></p>

<p>In another place he says, "Nero was the first who stained
with blood the rising Christian faith at Rome."</p>

<p>Shortly after this decree of Nero, a violent and unmerciful
persecution of the Christians manifest-</p>

</div><div id="80"> 

<p>ed itself in all the countries which were under the Roman
dominion; which persecution lasted until the Emperor's death.
The innocent Christians were accused not only of the burning of
Rome, but also of every wickedness imaginable; that they might
be tortured and put to death in the most awful manner. To this
the Roman Tacitus (according to the translation of J. Gysius,
and not that of Fenacolius) * refers, saying, "Then, Nero, in
order to avert this report from himself, caused those called
Christians by the common people, to be accused and exceedingly
tormented. The author of this name is Christ, who was publicly
put to death under the reign of Tiberius, by Pontius Pilate,
the governor. Those who confessed that they were Christians,
were first apprehended, and afterwards by making it known
themselves a great multitude were all condemned, not so much on
account of the conflagration, as of the hatred in which they
were held by mankind. The taking of their lives was accompanied
with much mockery; they were covered with the skins of wild
beasts, and then torn to pieces by dogs; or nailed on crosses;
or placed at stakes and burned; serving also as torches for the
spectators, when the day was over."</p>

<p>Thus Tacitus, a Roman himself, has sufficiently confessed,
in spite of himself, as J. Gysius writes, that the Christians
were innocent of the burning of Rome, but that they
notwithstanding had to suffer on account of their name.</p>

<p>Who the great multitudes were, that perished in those awful
persecutions, confessing the name of Christ even unto death, is
not stated in the histories of the fathers; however, we shall
content ourselves therewith, that God remembers them, and that
their names are written in the Book of Life. Nevertheless, we
meet with some, though but few, names of such who suffered in
that persecution in the reign of Nero, and sealed the truth of
Christ with their blood and death; of these we shall speak in
the proper place.</p>

<h2>OF THE UNHEARD-OF CRUELTIES NERO PRACTICED IN SLAYING THE PIOUS CHRISTIANS</h2> 

<p>Touching the manner in which the Christians were tortured
and killed at the time of Nero, A. Mellinus gives the following
account from Tacitus and other Roman writers: namely, that four
extremely cruel and unnatural kinds of torture were employed
against the Christians</p>

<p>Firstly, that they dressed them in the skins of tame and
wild beasts, that they might be torn to pieces by dogs or other
wild animals.</p>

<p>Secondly, that they, according to the example of their
Saviour, were fastened alive on crosses, and that in many
different ways.</p>

<p>Thirdly, that the innocent Christians were burned and smoked
by the Romans, with torches</p>

<br /><cite>* We quote Tacitus according to the annotation
of John Gysius in Hist. Mart. fol. 6. col. 2., from which the
translation of John Fenacolius differs greatly. and lamps,
under the shoulders and on other tender parts of their naked
bodies, after these had been cruelly lacerated with scourges or
rods. This burning was done also with shavings and fagots, they
(the Christians) being tied to stakes worth half a stiver.*
Therefore they called the Christians <i>sdrmenticii,</i> that
is, fagot people, and semissii, that is, half stiver people;
because they stood fastened to half stiver stakes, and were
thus burned with the slow fire of fagots.</cite> 

<p>Fourthly, that these miserable, accused Christian martyrs
were used as candles, torches, or lanterns, to see by them at
night.</p>

<p>Of those who were burned, some were tied or nailed to
stakes, and held still by a hook driven through the throat, so
that they could not move the head when the pitch, wax, tallow,
and othef inflammable substances were poured boiling over their
heads, and set on fire, so that all the unctious matter of the
human body flowing down made long, wide furrows in the sand of
the theatre. And thus human beings were lighted as torches, and
burned as lights for the wicked Romans at night.</p>

<p>Juvenal and Martial, both Roman poets, and Tertullian, state
this in a different manner, namely, that the Romans wrapped
them in a painful or burning mantle, which they, wound around
their hands and feet, in order to melt the very marrow in their
bones.</p>

<p>Furthermore, it is stated by A. Mellinus (from the
aforementioned authors), concerning those mantles, that they
were made of paper or linen, and, having been thickly coated
with oil, pitch, wax, rosin, tallow, and sulphur, were wrapped
around their whole body, and then set on fire.</p>

<p>For this spectacle Nero gave the use of his gardens, and
appeared himself among the people in the garb of a charioteer,
taking an active part in the Circusian games; himself standing
in the circus, and, as charioteer, guiding a chariot.</p>

<p>These proceedings, according to the testimony of Tacitus,
although it had the appearance that the Christians were
punished as malefactors who had deserved the extremest penalty,
nevertheless moved the people to compassion; for they
understood well enough that the -Christians were not
exterminated for the good of the common weal, but simply to
gratify the cruelty of one man, Nero. Compare <i>Abr. Mellin.
1st book van de Histor. der vervolg. en Mart printed Anna 1619
fol. 11. col. 4. and fol. 12. col. 1.</i> with <i>Tacit. Annal.
lib. 15.</i> and <i>Tertul. Apol. Contr. Gent. cap. 50</i> and
<i>adv Marc. cap. 5. Martinal. Epig. 25. lib. 25.</i></p>

<h2>SIMON PETER, THE HOLY APOSTLE, CRUCIFIED WITH HIS HEAD DOWNWARD, UNDER EMPEROR NERO, A. D. <i>69</i></h2> 

<p>Simon jona, afterwards called Cephas in Syriac, but Petros
or Petrus in Greek, was the brother of Andrew, a native of
Bethsaida in Galilee, and a</p>

<br /><cite>* About one cent.</cite> 

</div><div id="81"> 

<p>fisherman by occupation. He had his abode at Capernaum, with
his wife's mother. His brother Andrew, who was a .disciple of
John, first brought him to Christ, and shortly afterwards he
and his brother were called away from the fishery, to become
fishers of men. Matt. 16:17; Mark 3:16; John 1:42; Matt. 4:18;
John 1:44; Luke 4:31, 38; John 1:41, 42; Matt. 4:18,19.</p>

<p>He was diligently instructed by Christ, his Saviour, and
made such progress therein, that he became the spokesman of all
the apostles, being generally the most frank in asking and
answering, as well as the most zealous for Christ, in order to
prove to Him his love and fidelity, although at times he
manifested a certain rashness therein; on which occasions the
Lord, like a father his child, faithfully instructed, and,
whenever it was necessary, kindly reproved him. Matt. 16:16;
John 6:68; Matt. 18:21; 14:31; John 18:10, 11.</p>

<p>The Lord loved him in a special manner, and permitted him,
together with James and John, to witness His glory on Mount
Tabor; of which He afterwards made mention to the chosen
scattered strangers, saying, We were eyewitnesses of his
majesty. Matt. 17:1-3; 11 Pet. 1:16, 17. He was the boldest in
offering to suffer with Christ, but the weakest when the
conflict began. The Lord selected him and the two sons of
Zebedee, to watch and pray with Him in the garden; but his eyes
as well as those of the others were heavy with sleep; which
showed that though he was specially loved by Christ, he was
nothing more than a weak mortal. Matt. 26:33, 36.</p>

<p>About his denying Christ we shall not mention anything, as
this is not the proper place for it. since we purpose to speak
only of his faithfulness and steadfastness until death.</p>

<p>After the aforesaid denial, the Lord forgave him his sin,
and commanded him three times to feed His sheep and lambs;
which he subsequently faithfully did to the full extent of his
ability: John 21:15,16; 1 Pet. 5:1-3.</p>

<p>In one day there were converted to the faith, by his
preaching, about three thousand souls; all of whom were
baptized, and continued steadfastly in the apostles' doctrine
and fellowship, and in breaking of bread, and in prayers. Acts
2:41, 42.</p>

<p>He confirmed his doctrine through the power of God by signs
accompanying the same, according to the promise of Christ, as
is evidenced in the</p></div><div id="
 82"> 

<p>case of the lame man, Ananias, Sapphira, Eneas, Tabitha, and
others. Acts <i>3:7; 5:5,10; 9:34, 40.</i></p>

<p>The calling of the Gentiles was revealed to him in a vision
from heaven; but as he was properly an apostle of the Jews, his
ministry was most effectual among the circumcision. Acts
10:10-12; Gal. 2:<i>8.</i></p>

<p>But since he was so excellent and worthy a man in his
ministry, it pleased the Lord, that he should also be one of
His martyrs, to seal the truth of His doctrine not only with
the mouth, but also with his blood, yea, even with his death.
This the Lord showed to him shortly before His departure from
this world, saying,"Verily, verily, I say unto thee. When thou
wast young, thou girdedst thyself, and walkedst whither thou
wouldest: but when thou shalt be old, thou shalt stretch forth
thy hands, and another shall gird thee, and carry thee whither
thou wouldest not. This spake he, signifying by what death he
should glorify God" (John <i>21:18, 19).</i></p>

<p>This was verified in him, for shortly afterwards he and
John, his fellow helper, were-brought before the Jewish council
in Jerusalem, and severely threatened, to desist preaching in
the name of Jesus; to which they both boldly replied,"Whether
it be right in the sight of God to hearken unto you more than
unto God, judge ye" (Acts <i>4:19).</i></p>

<p>Afterwards he was again apprehended, together with the other
apostles, but by night, miraculously delivered out of prison by
an angel. Acts <i>5:19.</i></p>

<p>After that he was not only apprehended, but, together with
the other apostles, scourged and commanded, that they should
absolutely not preach in the name of the Lord Jesus; but they
went away from the Council, rejoicing that they were counted
worthy to suffer shame for His name. Acts <i>5:40-42.</i></p>

<p>Afterwards King Herod stretched forth his hands to vex
certain of the church. And he killed James the brother of John
with the sword. And when he saw it pleased the Jews, he
proceeded further and apprehended Peter also, and put him in
prison, and delivered him to four quaternions of soldiers;
intending after Easter to bring him forth to the people. But in
the night the angel of the Lord led him out, through the midst
of the soldiers, so that he returned to the believers, who
rejoiced greatly on account of him. Acts <i>12:1.</i></p>

<p>Finally there was fulfilled, according to the testimony of
history, the prediction of Christ, that he should glorify God
by his death; for while he was at Rome, he was sentenced by
-the Emperor Nero to be crucified. But, esteeming himself
unworthy to be crucified with his head upward, like his
Saviour, he requested to be crucified with his head downward;
which he easily obtained, for the tyrants were forthwith
willing and ready to increase his pain.</p>

<p>This occurred, as is stated, after Peter had preached the
Gospel for thirty-seven years, and when he was seventy years
old.* <i>Euseb. lib. 2. cap.</i> <i>25.</i> and <i>3. cap.</i>
2. from the writings of <i>Origen. Egesipp. Hist.</i> of <i>the
miserable Destruction of the City</i> of <i>Jerusalem. 3d book,
2d chap.</i> Also, <i>Konsttooneel vain veertig heerlijke
afbeeldingen Christi en sajner Apostelen, door N. D.</i> C.,
printed <i>Anno 1609,</i> in the <i>Life o</i> f <i>Peter.</i>
Also, W. <i>Baudart Apophthegm. Christian. lib. 1. super
Petrum. ex Hieron. de Vitis Illustribus. Johan. Strac. in
Festo. Joh. Evang. Ambr. ad Aux.</i></p>

<h2>PAUL, THE APOSTLE OF CHRIST, SORELY PERSE CUTED, AND FINALLY BEHEADED, AT ROME, UNDER THE EMPEROR NERO, A. D. <i>69</i></h2> 

<p>Saul, afterwards called Paul, was of Jewish descent, a
Hebrew of the tribe of Benjamin; but, as to who his father and
mother were, we find in Holy Writ no record. Phil.
<i>3:5.</i></p>

<p>As regards the place of his birth, it appears that his
parents, either on account of persecution, or of the Roman war,
or for some other reason, left their place of residence in the
portion of Benjamin, and went to dwell in a Roman, free city in
Cilicia, called Tarsus, where Paul was born, who, although he
was a Jew, yet, by the privileges of this city, became a Roman
citizen. Acts <i>22:3.</i></p>

<p>Respecting his early training, he was diligently instructed
by the wise Gamaliel, in the law of the fathers; in which he
became so proficient, that there were but few things in the
entire Old Testament, with which he was not acquainted. Gal.
1<i>14.</i></p>

<p>He lived blamelessly, according to the law of Moses and the
holy prophets, and that in the strictest order of Judaism; but,
having not yet been rightly instructed in the doctrine of the
holy Gospel, he, although in accordance with the law,
manifested a wrong zeal, and persecuted the church of Christ;
yea, at the death of Stephen he kept the garments of them that
slew him. Acts <i>7:58.</i></p>

<p>But afterwards, having obtained letters from the priests at
Jerusalem to the synagogues of Damascus, to bring as prisoners
such men and women who confessed the name of Christ, the Lord,
from heaven, arrested him in his course, calling,"Saul, Saul,
why persecutest thou me? And he said, Who art thou, Lord? And
the Lord said, I am Jesus whom thou persecutest: it is hard for
thee to kick against the pricks. And he trembling and
astonished said, Lord, what wilt thou have me to do? And the
Lord said unto him, Arise, and go into</p>

<br /><cite>* The historians state that the apostle Peter
wept very much daily after the ascension of Christ. When he was
asked why he wept so much, he replied 'Desiderio Domini, that
is,"Because I very much long for my Lord." There are ancient
writers who state that Peter cried every time he heard a cock
crow. When he saw his beloved wife being led out, to be put to
death, on account of having confessed the faith, he addressed
her in these words,"0 my beloved wife! have the Lord Jesus
always before thine yes; this is the marriage of the saints."
He was sentenced to be crucified in the usual manner. But he
requested to be hung on the cross with his feet up, saying, I
am not worthy to be hung on the cross, like the Son of God hung
and suffered on it."-W. Baudart. Apophthegm. printed Anno 1640,
first book, page 2.</cite> 

</div><div id="83"> <br />

<p>the city, and it shall be told thee what thou must do" (Acts
9:1-6).</p>

<p>The men who journeyed with him stood speechless, hearing a
voice, but seeing no man. Then he arose from the earth, to
which he had been prostrated by fear; and when he opened his
eyes, lie could not see, so that they led him by the hand, and
brought him into Damascus. Verses 7, 8.</p>

<p>In the city of Damascus there was a disciple, named Ananias;
and to him the Lord said in a vision,"Arise, and go into the
street which is called Straight, and inquire in the house of
Judas for one called Saul, of Tarsus: for, behold, he
prayeth."</p>

<p>Ananias answered,"Lord, I have heard by many of this man,
how much evil he hath done to thy saints at Jerusalem."</p>

<p>Then said the Lord to him,"Go thy way: for he is a chosen
vessel unto me, to bear my name before the Gentiles, and kings,
and the children of Israel: for I will shew him how great
things he must suffer for my name's sake., "And Ananias went his way, and entered into the house; and
putting his hands on him, said, Brother Saul, the Lord hath
sent me, that thou mightest receive thy sight, and be filled
with the Holy Ghost. And immediately there fell from his eyes
as it had been scales; and he received sight forthwith, and
arose, and was baptized" (Acts 9: 7-.16).</p>

<p>Such was the conversion of Saul, who was afterwards called
Paul, and was one of the chief apostles of our Lord Jesus
Christ: yea, he labored more abundantly than they all. I Cor.
15:10.</p>

<p>Immediately after his conversion, he preached Christ in the
synagogues, that He was the Son of God. Acts 9:20.</p>

<p>Some time afterwards, the Holy Ghost said to the prophets
and teachers at Antioch, after they</p>

<p>had ministered to the Lord with fasting and prayer,"Separate
me Barnabas and Saul for the work whereunto I have called
them." And thus they were sent out by the Holy Ghost. Acts
13:2, 3.</p>

<p>In the meantime, Paul, formerly called Saul, was endowed
with special gifts of the Holy Ghost, so that he had the spirit
of discernment, prophecy, tongues, miracles. Acts 13:9, 10; I
Tim. 4:1; I Cor. 14:18; Acts 19:11.</p>

</div><div id="84"> 

<p>He had also special revelations, so that, at a certain time,
he was caught up to the third heaven, yea, into the heavenly
paradise, where he heard unspeakable words, which no man can
utter. II Cor. 12:1.</p>

<p>He was, moreover, adorned with many Christian virtues, which
he practiced with a good conscience; as well as with
faithfulness in his ministry, paternal care over all the
churches, and sincere love for them, even unto death, so that
he said,"Being affectionately desirous of you, we were willing
to have imparted unto you, not the Gospel of God only, but also
our own souls, because ye were dear unto us" (I Thess.
2:8).</p>

<p>He was free from covetousness, of a benevolent disposition,
and would rather labor with his own hands, than be a burden to
the church, lest it might prove a hindrance to the holy Gospel.
Acts 20:34.</p>

<p>He vigorously withstood, and overcame through the Word of
God, the erring spirits, sorcerers, Epicurean philosophers, and
false prophets.</p>

<p>He feared neither great nor small, noble nor ignoble, Jew
nor Greek; but taught the Word of God in sincerity.</p>

<p>What he suffered in seven great land and sea journeys,
during the time of thirty years; during which he traveled in
Judea; Syria, Asia, Macedonia, Greece, Italy, Spain, France,
Germany, yea, almost through the whole then known world, is
sufficiently evident, from Holy Scripture as well as from
history.</p>

<p>It is computed, that until his first imprisonment at Rome,
he had traveled over three thousand German miles, by water and
by land, only for the Gospel's sake; besides all the other
arduous journeys he undertook, in order to strengthen, awaken,
and comfort the newly-planted churches; in which he met with
much vexation, misery ,and grief from the hands of the
unbelievers. The words which the Lord had spoken at the time of
his conversion, were fulfilled in every part, "I will shew him
how great things he must suffer for my name's sake" (Acts
9:16).</p>

<p>Shortly after he was baptized, and his zeal for the truth of
Christ began to break forth at Damascus, proving to the Jews
that Christ was come, they took counsel to kill him; wherefore
he was let down by the wall in a basket, that he might escape
their hands. Acts 9:24, 25.</p>

<p>Afterwards, when he came to Iconium with his companion
Barnabas, the Jews stirred up the Gentiles against him and his
friend, intending to stone them. Acts 14:2, 5.</p>

<p>But when they had fled to Lystra, and had made a cripple
able to walk, there came certain Jews from Antioch and Iconium,
and stirred up the people, so that they stoned Paul, whom they
first had worshiped as a god, and drew him out of the city,
supposing that he was dead: howbeit, as the disciples stood
round about him, he rose up again. Acts 14:19, 20. Afterwards,
traveling with Silas, and having, at Philippi, delivered a
damsel from a. spirit of divination, he and Silas were accused
on that account, beaten with rods, cast into prison, their feet
made fast in the stocks, and were kept in close confinement.
But in the night God sent an earthquake, so that the
foundations of the prison were shaken, the doors opened, and
the bands (of the stocks) loosed of their own accord. By this
means Paul and Silas were delivered, with the knowledge of the
keeper, who accepted the faith, and was baptized. Acts
16:22-36.</p>

<p>Subsequently, being at Thessalonica, and having preached the
Word of God three Sabbaths, so that of the devout Greeks, a
great multitude believed, and of the chief women not a few; the
Jews, who believed not, were moved with envy; wherefore they
took unto them certain lewd fellows--market loungers-and
gathered a great company, and set the city in an uproar, and
assaulted the house of one Jason, thinking that Paul and Silas
were within, and sought to bring them out to the people. And
when they found them not, they drew Jason and certain brethren
unto the rulers of the city, crying,"These that have turned the
world upside down are come hither also; whom Jason hath
secretly received" (Acts 17:1-7). From there, on account of the
persecution, the brethren sent both of them away by night unto
Berea. Verse 10.</p>

<p>After that,"when Gallio was the deputy of Achaia, the Jews
made insurrection with one accord against Paul, and brought him
to the judgment seat, saying, This fellow persuadeth men to
worship God contrary to the law." And when Paul was now about
to open his mouth, to defend himself, Gallio said unto the
Jews, to show to them the groundlessness of their
accusations,"If it were a matter of wrong or wicked lewdness, O
ye Jews, reason would that I should bear with you: but if it be
a question of words and names, and of your law, look ye to it:
for I will be no judge of such matters. And he drave them from
the judgment seat." Acts 18:12-16.</p>

<p>After this, there came down from Judea a prophet, named
Agabus, who took Paul's girdle, and bound himself saying,"Thus
saith the Holy Ghost, So shall the Jews at Jerusalem bind the
man that owneth this girdle, and shall deliver him into the
hands of the Gentiles." Thereupon the brethren besought Paul,
not to go up to Jerusalem. But he answered,"What mean ye to
weep and to break mine heart? for I am ready not to be bound
only, but also to die at Jerusalem' for the name of the Lord
Jesus." Acts 21:10-13. Oh, the great resolution of the Apostle
Paul!</p>

<p>After that, when he, standing on the stairs at Jerusalem,
defended himself before those who had accused him, it came to
pass that the Jews, having given him audience for awhile, cast
off their clothes, threw dust into the air, and cried,"Away
with such a fellow from the earth: for it is not fit that he
should live." Acts 22:22, 23.</p>

</div><div id="85"> 

<p>In the meantime he was bound, in order to be scourged; which
he would not have escaped, had he not declared that he was a
Roman citizen: Verses 25-29., "Paul, earnestly beholding the council, said, Men and
brethren, I have lived in all good conscience before God until
this day. And the high priest Ananias commanded them that stood
by him to smite him on the mouth" (Acts 23:1, 2)., "The night following, the Lord stood by him, and said, Be of
good cheer, Paul: for as thou hast testified of me in
Jerusalem, so must thou bear witness also at Rome" (verse
11).</p>

<p>And when it was day, certain of the Jews banded together,
and bound themselves neither to eat nor to drink till they had
killed Paul. And they were more than forty which had made this
conspiracy. Verse 12.</p>

<p>But Paul was warned of this ambuscade by his sister's son,
and when the latter made it known to the chief captain of the
Romans, measures were taken to escape it; wherefore.he was
brought in the third hour of the night to Caesarea, unto Felix
the governor. Verses 16-33. And Felix kept him in Herod's
judgment hall, till his accusers should come. Verse 35.</p>

<p>After five days Ananias the high priest descended with the
elders, and with the orator Tertullus, who informed the
governor against Paul. And when Paul was called forth,
Tertullus, after having saluted Felix with many flattering
words, began to accuse him, saying,"We have found this man a
pestilent fellow, and a mover of sedition among all the Jews
throughout the world, and a ringleader of the sect of the
Nazarenes: who also hath gone about to profane the temple: whom
we took, and would have judged according to our law. But the
chief captain Lysias came upon us, and with great violence took
him away out of our hands," etc."And the Jews also assented,
saying that these things were so." Acts 24:1-9.</p>

<p>But that this was not so (although they sought to bring
about his death by these accusations), is evident from the
preceding facts mentioned in the Acts of the Apostles, and from
the following dedense of Paul, verses 10-21., "But after two years Portius Festus came into Felix' room:
and Felix, willing to shew the Jew a pleasure, left Paul bound"
(verse 27).</p>

<p>Now when Festus was come into the province, after three days
he ascended from Caesarea to Jerusalem. Then the high priest
and the chief of the Jews went to him, and desired favor, that
he would send for Paul to Jerusalem; laying wait in the way to
kill him. Festus replied to the Jews, that Paul should be kept
at Caesarea, and that those who were to accuse him, might come
thither. Acts 25:4, 5.</p>

<p>And when they were come, they brought forward many and
grievous complaints, which they could not prove, and which Paul
briefly and conclusively refuted, declaring that he had
offended neither against the law of the Jews, nor against the
emple,; nor against Caesar. But being deceitfully asked by
Festus, whether he was willing to go up</p>

<p>to Jerusalem, to be judged there (where his mortal enemies
were), he fearlessly replied,"I stand at Caesar's judgment
seat, where I ought to be judged: to the Jews have I done no
wrong, as thou very well knowest. But if I be an offender, or
have committed anything worthy of death, I refuse not to die."
Acts 25:9-11.</p>

<p>After this, Paul was examined by King Agrippa, in the
presence of Festus. His defense caused Festus, who was a friend
of the Jews, to exclaim</p>

<p>Paul, thou art beside thyself. Agrippa, however, declared
that he was almost persuaded to become a Christian. He also
gave as his opinion, that there was nothing worthy of death in
him; wherefore he said to Festus,. This man might have been set
at liberty, if he had not appealed unto Caesar. Acts
26:1-32.</p>

<p>In the meantime it was determined that he should sail to
Italy, to be examined before Caesar. To this end he and certain
other prisoners were delivered to Julius, a centurion of the
imperial band. Having embarked in a ship of Adramyttium, they
sailed along Cyprus, Cilicia, Pamphylia, and other countries,
to Myra in Lycia, where they were transferred into a ship of
Alexandria bound for Italy. In this ship they sailed against
Cnidus, as far as under Crete, over against the city of
Salmone; thence to a place which is called the Fair Havens,
nigh to Lasea. Acts 27:1-8.</p>

<p>At this place Paul foretold them, that they would not
complete this voyage without great damage, clanger of
shipwreck, and peril of life; but the centurion believed the
master and the owner of the ship, more than those things which
were spoken by Paul. Verses 10, 11.</p>

<p>Departing thence, they hoped to winter at Phenice, a haven
of Crete; but they touched at Asson, and sailed close by Crete.
Verses 12, 13.</p>

<p>Then the ship was caught by a northeast wind, which had
sprung up, and carried her, against their purpose, through the
billows so that they had to let her drive before it; however,
they came to the Island Clauda, yet with fear, lest they should
fall into the quicksands. Verses 16, 17. For many days and
nights they saw neither sun nor stars through the mighty
tempest, so that all hope that they should be saved was taken
away. Verse 20.</p>

<p>Meanwhile God sent His angel on a certain night to Paul,
saying,"Fear not: thou must be brought before Caesar: and, lo,
God hath given thee all them that sail with thee." Verses 23,
24.</p>

<p>Thereupon Paul urged them to take meat, for the preservation
of their lives, for, on account of their deadly fear, they had
not eaten anything for fourteen days; and breaking the bread,
for to eat, he gave thanks to God in the presence of them all.
Verses 33-36.</p>

<p>And when it was day, they knew not the land but they
discovered a creek; which however they could not enter, but ran
aground, before the island</p>

</div><div id="86"> 

<p>of Melita (now called Malta); where the forepart of the ship
stuck fast, but the hinder part was broken in pieces by the
waves. Verses 39-41. Here the soldiers held a council and
decided to kill the prisoners, including Paul, lest any of them
should swim out, and escape. The centurion, however, willing to
save Paul, kept them from their purpose: and commanded that
they who could swim should cast themselves first into the sea,
and get to land which was done; and the rest floated, some on
boards, and some on broken pieces of the ship, so that all,
namely, one hundred and seventy souls, escaped to land. Verses
42-44. Thus was fulfilled what Paul had foretold them, namely,
that they should suffer shipwreck, and yet escape with their
lives.</p>

<p>Here Paul was first pronounced a murderer, but afterwards a
god, by the inhabitants of the island; and this, because they
observed a viper fastening itself on his hand, which he shook
off into the fire, without suffering any harm. Acts 21:3-6.</p>

<p>After three months they sailed for Italy in a ship which had
wintered in the isle: yet they arrived first at Syracuse, in
Sicily, and then at Puteoli, on the Italian .border, where Paul
found brethren, with wham he tarried seven days; others came to
meet him as far as Appii Forum, and the Three Taverns.
Proceeding, he came to Rome, where the centurion delivered him
to the chief captain, to be brought before Caesar. In the
meantime he was kept by a soldier, and bound with a chain.
Verses 11-16, 20.</p>

<p>We have narrated all these things the more circumstantially
(and this, according to Holy Scripture) in order that it may be
seen, how much this pious man suffered in his travels by sea
and by land, for the sake of the holy Gospel. Of all this he
gives a brief account in his second epistle to the Corinthian
church, writing thus, "Of the Jews five times received I forty
stripes save one. Thrice was I beaten with rods, once was I
stoned, thrice I suffered shipwreck, a night and a day I have
been in the deep; in journeyings often, in perils of waters, in
perils of robbers, in perils by mine own countrymen, in perils
by the heathen, in perils in the city, in perils in the
wilderness, in perils among false brethren; in weariness and
painfulness, in watchings often, in cold and nakedness" (II
Cor. 11:24-27).</p>

<p>Yea, it appears from the first epistle to the Corinthians,
that he was thrown before the wild beasts in a theater at
Ephesus, to be torn to pieces, or at least, to fight for his
life with them; from which God at that time delivered him.
Concerning this, the intelligent may judge; he writes,"If after
the manner of men I have fought with beasts at Ephesus, what
advantageth it me, if the dead rise not?" (I Cor. 15:32)</p>

<p>As regards his imprisonment at Rome, most of the ancient
writers are of the opinion that, although nearly all his
friends forsook him at the time when he was to make his
defense, he, being brought be fore Caesar, defended himself so
cleverly against the accusation of the Jews, that he was set
free for this time. But how true this is, we leave to its own
merits, and to the omniscient God. This much, however, is
certain, that while in prison at Rome, he wrote to his
spiritual son Timothy, that he was now ready to be offered as a
drink offering, and that the time of his departure was at hand;
but that he took comfort in the thought, that he had fought a
good fight, finished his course, and kept the faith, and that
there was laid up for him a crown of righteousness, which the
Lord, the righteous judge, should give him at that day. II Tim.
4:6-8.</p>

<p>According to ancient records he was then beheaded at the
command of Nero, outside of Rome, on the road that leads to
Ostia, called <i>Via Ostiensis,</i> where the Romans used to
have their place of execution, in the last year of Nero, or
about A.D. 69. <i>Joh. Gys.</i> in the <i>History of the
Martyrs,</i> from <i>Joseph Scaliger,</i> about Paul.
<i>Egesipp. Hist. Destruc. Jerusal., lib.</i> 3, <i>cap.</i> 2.
<i>Konst-tooneel van veertig heerlijke afbeelding.en Christi en
sijner Apostelen,</i> printed <i>Anno</i> 1609; about the life
of Paul. <i>Itinerarium Sacra?, Scricent;turce per H.
Bunt</i>ing, translated into the Dutch by <i>Matthias
Hazard;</i> printed <i>Anno</i> 1624. in the <i>Travels of
Paul, page</i> 162. col. 1.</p>

<h2>THE MARTYRDOM OF SOME OF PAUL'S FRIENDS AND BRETHREN WHO WERE IMPRISONED WITH HIM SHORTLY AFTER HE WAS OFFERED UP; BESIDES OTHERS WHO WERE SLAIN AFTERWARDS</h2> 

<p>It is related that shortly after the death of the Apostle
Paul, his brethren and fellow prisoners, whom he mentions in
the epistles which he wrote from his prison, namely,
Aristarchus, Epaphras, Aquila, Prisca, Andronicus, Junias,
Silas or Silvanus, Onesiphorus, etc., followed in his footsteps
in suffering for the name of Christ.</p>

<h2>ARISTARCHUS, A TRAVELING COMPANION OF PAUL, SLAIN AT ROME, UNDER NERO, ABOUT A. D. 70</h2> 

<p>Aristarchus, a native of Thessalonica, was, with Gaius,
Paul's companion in his journey from Macedonia to Asia; with
which Gaius he was apprehended at a certain time, in an uproar
at Ephesus, but for that time made his escape. Afterwards,
however, he was brought to Rome a prisoner, just at the time
that Paul also was apprehended for the testimony of Jesus
Christ.</p>

<p>This friend of God saluted the church at Colosse by the hand
of Paul; of which Paul makes mention, writing,"Aristarchus my
fellow prisoner saluteth you" (Col. 4:10).</p>

<p>This imprisonment, however, was not the end of it; for he
was also devoured by that cruel lion. Nero, about the time of
Paul's death after having been several years previously a
faithful pastor of</p>

</div><div id="87"> 

<p>the church at Thessalonica, A. <i>Mell. 1st Book, van de
Hist. der vervolg. en Mart.,</i> printed at Dort, <i>Anno
1619,</i> fol. <i>17, col. 4, froze Bedw Usuard. Adon Mart.
Rom. 4 aug. Also, Menol. Grcec. 14 April.</i></p>

<h2>EPAPHRAS, A FELLOW PRISONER OF PAUL, SLAIN UNDER NERO, ABOUT A. D. 70</h2> 

<p>Epaphras was a faithful minister of Jesus Christ for the
church at Colosse, which, while in bonds at Rome, he saluted by
the hand of Paul, as appears from the epistle Paul wrote from
his prison at Rome to the Colossians, in which, among other
things, he says, "Epaphras, who is one of you, a servant of
Christ, saluteth you, always laboring fervently for you in
prayers, that ye may stand perfect and complete in all the will
of God. For I bear him record, that he hath a great zeal for
you, and them that are in Laodicea, and them in Hierapolis"
(Col. 4:12, 13).</p>

<p>Concerning his being a prisoner with Paul, or, apparently,
sharing the same dungeon with him, Paul writes to Philemon, in
the conclusion of the epistle, "There salute thee Epaphras, my
fellow prisoner in Christ Jesus" (verse 23).</p>

<p>Hence, it follows that those write not without foundation,
who hold that Epaphras also suffered a violent death under the
persecution of Nero. <i>Idem, Ibidem. ex Mart. Rom. 19.
Jul.</i></p>

<h2>FOUR FELLOW LABORERS AND RELATIVES OF PAUL, NAMELY, PRISCA, AQUILA, ANDRONICUS, AND JUNIA, MARTYRED AT ROME, UNDER NERO, ABOUT A. D. 70</h2> 

<p>The apostle Paul, at the conclusion of his epistle to the
church of God at Rome, very lovingly saluting different saints
residing there, mentions, among others, two persons who had
laid down their own necks for his life; also two others whom he
calls his fellowprisoners, doubtless, because they were
subject, with him, to like persecution and suffering on account
of the name of Christ. <i>All</i> these he mentions by name,
and salutes them in apostolic manner.</p>

<p>Of the first two he writes thus, "Greet Priscilla and Aquila,
my helpers in Christ Jesus, who have for my life laid down
their own necks" (Rom. 16: 3, 4).</p>

<p>The last two he mentions in this manner, "Salute Andronicus
and Junia, my kinsmen, and my fellowprisoners, who are of note
among the apostles, who also were in Christ before me" (verse
7).</p>

<p>What was the end of these persons, is stated neither in
Paul's epistles nor in any other part of the New Testament; but
other writers hold, that, in the aforementioned persecution of
Nero, they suffered and fought unto death for the truth of
Jesus Christ; which can not well be contradicted, since the
bloodthirstiness of this emperor, especially against the
Christians, was so great, that but few of those who fell into
his hands escaped without bloodshed or a miserable death.
<i>See above.</i></p>

<h2>SILAS, OR SILVANUS, SCOURGED AT PHILIPPI, IN MACEDONIA, AND DIED A MARTYR, ABOUT A. D. 70</h2> 

<p>Silas, also called Silvanus, together with Judas, surnamed
Barsabas, was added to the apostles Paul and Barnabas. These
men were leaders among the brethren, and were to bear testimony
to those matters which had been considered and decided upon by
the apostles at Jerusalem, for the welfare of the church of
God. Acts 15:<i>27, 34.</i></p>

<p>This Silas having once promoted, with Paul, the work of the
holy Gospel, at Philippi, in Macedonia, he was apprehended
together with Paul, brought before the rulers, publicly
scourged, though without trial, and thus maltreated, cast into
prison, against right and reason, with his feet made fast in
the stocks; but was by divine Providence miraculously
delivered, an earthquake at midnight opening the doors of the
prison. Acts 16:19-39.</p>

<p>According to the statements of some writers, he afterwards
became bishop of the church at Corinth, and died a martyr after
having done much preaching. This much is certain, according to
the testimony of Holy Scripture, that he was not only
apprehended and scourged for the Gospel's sake, but suffered
many indignities before his end. A. <i>Mell., 1st Book, van de
Hist. der hervolg.,</i> fol. 18, col. 1.</p>

<h2>ONESIPHORUS, A FRIEND OF PAUL, AND
PORPHYRIUS, HIS COMPANION, TIED TO WILD HORSES, AND DRAGGED, OR TORN, TO DEATH, AT HELLESPONTUS, THROUGH THE EDICT OF NERO, ABOUT A. D. <i>70</i></h2> 

<p>Onesiphorus was an Asian, a citizen of Ephesus, in Asia
Minor, and very virtuous and godly in life, so that he
frequently came to visit, converse with, and comfort, the
apostle Paul in his bonds at Rome; on account of which Paul
rejoiced with all his heart, and prayed to God to reward him
for this kindness in the great day of recompense. Concerning
this, Paul writes thus to Timothy."The Lord give mercy unto the
house of Onesiphorus; for he oft refreshed me, and was not
ashamed of my chain: but when he was in Rome, he sought me out
very diligently, and found me. The Lord grant unto him that he
may find mercy of the Lord in that day: and in how many things
he ministered unto me at Ephesus, thou knowest very well" (II
Tim. 1:16-18). In the conclusion of the same letter he
affectionately salutes the household of Onesiphorus,
saying,"Salute . . .</p>

<p>and the household of Onesiphorus . . . Grace be with you.
Amen" (II Tim. 4:19, 22) .</p>

<p>Some writers say that this pious man was bishop of (the
church of) Colophon; others, of Coronia but whether Colophon
and Coronia at that time</p>

</div><div id="88"> <br />

<p>were not one and the same city, called by two different
names; or, if they were two separate cities, whether he had the
oversight over both churches at once, is a matter of little
consequence. It is sufficient for us, that the historians agree
in the fact that he and Porphyrius, his fellow servant of Jesus
Christ, were first beaten with many severe stripes at
Hellespontus, by the order of Adrianus the governor, and
afterwards, both together, tied to wild horses, and thus
dragged or torn to death, by virtue of Nero's bloody edict. A.
<i>Mellin., 1st Book van de histmrien der hervolgingen en
Martelaren,</i> printed A. <i>D. 1619, fol. 18, cot. 2, from
Doroth., in Synopsi Mart. Rom. 6 Sept.</i></p>

 
<h1>ANDREW, THE HOLY APOSTLE, CRUCIFIED AT PATRAS, IN ACHAIA, ABOUT A. D. 70</h1>

<p>Andrew, the son of Jona, and brother of Peter, was a native
of Bethsaida in Galilee. He was first a disciple of John the
Baptist, ,and since he was older than Peter, and knew Christ
first, he brought his brother to Christ as to the true Messiah.
Being also a fisherman, like Peter, the Lord called him, and
promised to make him a fisher of men. John <i>1:44, 40, 42;</i>
Matt. <i>4:18, 19.</i></p>

<p>And because he zealously followed the Lord, and was
instructed in the evangelical doctrine, so that he was worthy
to be filled with the spirit of miracles, the Lord ordained him
as one of His twelve apostles; in which ministry he, with the
others, faithfully labored among the Jews. Matt. <i>10:2;</i>
Mark 6:7.</p>

<p>He was held in no small esteem by the Lord; for he had, as
it appears, a freer access to Him, than Philip himself. Compare
John 1:40 with verses <i>42, 43.</i></p>

<p>Further, although he fell through weakness, like all the
other apostles, in forsaking his Master; yet he recovered from
his fall, and again joined himself to Christ and to his fellow
brethren. Matt. <i>26:31;</i> Luke <i>24:33.</i></p>

<p>Afterwards he with all his fellow ministers received command
to preach the Gospel in the whole world, and to all nations; to
which end he was endued, on the day of Pentecost, with the Holy
Ghost, whom he received in all fullness.. Matt.
<i>28:19.</i></p>

</div><div id="89"> 

<p>Going out, in obedience to the command of Christ, he taught
in many countries, as in Pontus, Galatia, Bethynia, as well as
at Antropophages, and afterwards in Scythia. He also traveled
in the northern and the southern countries, yea, as far as into
Byzantium; further, in Thracia, Macedonia, Thessalia, and
Achaia, everywhere preaching Christ; whereby he converted many
to the Christian faith.</p>

<p>He also confirmed the doctrine of his Master with many
miracles, according to the words of the Lord, "These signs shall
follow them," etc. But since other authors do not .treat
accurately of this, we shall omit the particulars of these
signs. <i>Abdias, van den strijd der Apostelen.</i></p>

<p>Finally, when he had finished his course, according to the
will of the eternal God, Aegaeas, the governor of Edessa, in
the name of the Roman senate, caused him to be crucified in the
city of Patras, in Achaia. Joh. Gys. His. <i>Mart., fol. 10,
col. 1, 2, from Sophronis and Aug. Solilo., cap. 2.</i></p>

<p>Concerning the cause and manner of his death, the following
is contained in <i>Apophthegm. Christian. Baudart., page 3:
At</i> Patras, a city in Achaia, he converted besides many
others, Maximillia, the wife of Aegaeas, the governor, to the
Christian faith. This so enraged the governor against Andrew,
that he threatened him with death of the cross. But the apostle
said to the governor, "Had I feared the death of the cross, I
should not have preached the majesty and gloriousness of the
cross of Christ."</p>

<p>The enemies of the truth having apprehended and sentenced to
death the apostle Andrew, he went joyfully to the place where
he was to be crucified, and, having come near the cross, he
said,"O beloved cross! I have greatly longed for thee. I
rejoice to see thee erected here. I come to thee with a
peaceful conscience and with cheerfulness, desiring that I, who
am a disciple of Him who hung on the cross, may also be
crucified." The apostle said further,"The nearer I come to the
cross, the nearer I come to God; and the farther I am from the
cross, the farther I remain from God."</p>

<p>The holy apostle hung three days on the cross; he was riot
silent, however; but as long as he could move his tongue, he
instructed the people that stood by the cross, in the way of
the truth, saying, among other things, "I thank my Lord Jesus
Christ, that He, having used me for a time as an ambassador,
now permits me to have this body, that I, through a good
confession, may obtain everlasting grace and mercy. Remain
steadfast in the word and doctrine which you have received,
instructing one another, that you may dwell with God in
eternity, and receive the fruit of His promises."</p>

<p>The Christians and other pious people besought the governor
to give Andrew unto them, and take him down from the cross.,
(For it appears that he was not nailed to the cross, like
Christ, but tied to it). When the apostle learned of this, he
cried to God, Saying,"O Lord Jesus Christ! suffer not that Thy
servant, who hangs here on the tree for Thy name's sake, be
released, to dwell again among men; but receive me. O my Lord,
my God! whom I have known, whom I have loved, to whom I cling,
whom I desire to see, and in whom I am what I am." Having
spoken these words, the holy apostle committed his spirit into
the hands of his heavenly Father. M. W. <i>Baudart. in
Apophthegm Christian. lib. 1, super Andream, ex August. de Vera
et Falsa Poenitentia., cap 8, Bernhard. in Sermon. de Andrea.
Lanfrancus contra Berengar. Niceph., lib. 2, cap. 39, and lib.
15, cap. 39. Remigius in Psal. 21 and 40. Johan. Strac. in
Festo Andreae, p. 23, haec et alia.</i> Also, <i>Konst-tooneel
van veertig, by N. D. C., Concerning the Life of
Andrew.</i></p>

<h2>BARTHOLOMEW, THE HOLY APOSTLE OF CHRIST, FIRST GREATLY TORTURED, THEN FLAYED ALIVE, AND FINALLY BEHEADED, IN ARMENIA, BY KING ASTYAGES, ABOUT A. D. 70</h2> 

<p>Bartholomew, which signifies, the son of Tholomaeus, was a
Galilean, like all the other apostles; and also a fisherman,
according to the opinion of Theodoretus; some, however, hold,
that he was of royal descent, and the nephew of the king of
Syria.</p>

<p>Little is said of him in Holy Scriptures aside from what
relates to his call to the apostleship to preach the Gospel
with the others throughout Judea and Galilee, to the lost sheep
of the house of Israel. After Christ's resurrection he was
confirmed in his apostleship, and, with the others who were in
like ministry, received the gift of the Holy Ghost. Matt.
<i>10:3;</i> Mark <i>3:18; Luke</i> 6:<i>14,15; Acts</i>
2:1-5.</p>

<p>After the separation of the apostles he exercised his
ministry first in Lycaonia, then in Syria and the upper parts
of Asia., and afterwards in India, where, as the chronicles
relate, Pantenus, a teacher of Alexander, coming to the same
place, about a century afterwards, found and took away with him
the Gospel of Matthew, which Bartholomew had brought thither,
and which he had taught the Indians in their native tongue.
Isid. <i>de part N. T., J. Gys. Hieron, Catal. Pantaleon,
Euseb., lib. 3, cap. 10, J. Gys.</i></p>

<p>Finally he spread the Gospel in Great Armenia, and there, in
Albana, or Albanopolis, the capital and residence of the
kingdom of Poleno, or Palemonio, and converted King Astyages'
brother, together with his wife, two sons, and a daughter, to
the faith. <i>Hieron. Cat. Barthol., J. Gys.</i></p>

<p>He moreover, as is stated by others, delivered from
idolatry, and enlightened with the knowledge of Jesus Christ,
twelve cities in that country. in which the devil was worshiped
through the idol Ashtaroth. But the priests of Ashtaroth, being
very much vexed on account of this, complained to King
Astyages, who caused Bartholomew, this holy</p>

</div><div id="90"> 

<p>apostle of Christ, to be apprehended and brought before
him.</p>

<p>When Bartholomew stood before the king, the latter upbraided
him, that he had perverted his brother, and unsettled the
worship of the gods in his country. He therefore threatened him
with death, unless he would desist preaching Christ, and
sacrifice to his gods.</p>

<p>When Bartholomew had replied to this accusation, saying,
that he had not perverted, but converted, his brother, that he
had preached the true worship of God in his country, and that
he would rather seal his testimony with blood, than suffer the
least shipwreck of his faith or conscience, the king gave
orders, that he should first be severely tortured and beaten
with rods, then be suspended on a cross with his head
downwards, flayed alive, and finally beheaded with the ax. This
having been done with him, he was united with Christ, his Lord.
<i>Niceph. lib. 3, cap. 39, Isid. Hisp. de vita et obitu sanet.
1. Gys. Hi st. Mart. super Bartholomeum.</i></p>

<p>Others relate that the sentence pronounced upon Bartholomew
extended no further, than that he should be flayed on the
cross, without any mention of decapitation; but that, as he,
being still alive after having been flayed, exhorted the
people, his head was struck off with an ax, in order to prevent
this, he having committed his spirit into the hands of God.
<i>Konst-tooneel van veertig, about the Life of Bartholomew.
Also, Bybelsch Naembo</i>ek, <i>printed at Horn, Anno 1632,
letter B. on the nawne Bartholomew, fol. 159, col. 2.</i></p>

<h2>THOMAS, THE HOLY APOSTLE OF CHRIST, TORMENTED WITH RED-HOT PLATES, CAST INTO A FURNACE, AND HIS SIDE PIERCED WITH SPEARS BY THE SAVAGES, AT CALAMINA, ABOUT A. D. 70</h2> 

<p>Thomas, surnamed Didymus, that is, twin, was a native of
Galilee, and his occupation, as it appears, that of a
fisherman. John 11:16. Concerning his parents and the
time of his conversion, we find no account in the Evangelists,
who mention only his call to the apostleship. Matt. 10:3.</p>

<p>His love and ardent affection for Christ appears from the
fact that he exhorted his brethren, to go up to Jerusalem, that
they might die with Christ. John 11:16. But as he had not yet
resisted unto</p></div><div id="
 91"> 

<p>blood, and labored also under a certain misapprehension
concerning the death of Christ, he with the others forsook the
Lord in the time of need. John 14:5; Matt. 26:31.</p>

<p>Afterwards, when the Lord had arisen, and appeared to the
other apostles, in the absence of Thomas, he could not believe
it, as he said, unless he should put his fingers into the
prints of the nails with which He had been crucified, and
thrust his hand into the Lord's side, which a soldier had
opened with a spear. But when the Lord came again, and appeared
also to him, saying,"Reach hither thy finger, and .behold my
hands; and reach hither thy hand, and thrust it into my side,"
etc., then he, being convinced, began to salute Christ with
divine titles of honor, saying,"My Lord and my God." John
20:24-28.</p>

<p>After this, he, together with the other apostles, received
commandment to preach the Gospel in the whole world, and to
baptize the believers; to which end, ten days after, namely, on
the day of Pentecost, he, with all his fellow ministers,
received the Holy Ghost in full abundance. Matt. 28:19, 20;
Mark 16:15, 16.</p>

<p>According to history, he sent Thaddeus unto King Abgarus,
shortly after Christ's resurrection. <i>Euseb. Hilt. Eccl.,
lib. 1, cap. 13.</i></p>

<p>As Parthia, India, Ethiopia, and many other countries had as
his portion, been assigned him, he traveled through them; he
dreaded, however, as it appears, to go to the moors and the
savage nations of India. Nevertheless, God having strengthened
him, he there converted many to God. <i>Euseb. Hilt. Eccl.,
lib: 3, cad. 1.</i></p>

<p>Concerning the end of Thomas, the most probable account
found by the ancients is this, namely, that at Calamina, a city
in the East Indies, he put a stop to the abominable idolatry of
the heathen, who worshiped there an image of the sun; so that
through the power of God he compelled the Evil One to destroy
the image. Thereupon the idolatrous priest accused him before
their king, who sentenced him, first to be tormented with
red-hot plates, and then to be cast into a glowing furnace, and
burned. But when the idolatrous priests, who stood before the
furnace, saw that the fire did not hurt him, they pierced his
side, as he lay in the furnace, with spears and javelins; thus
he conformed in steadfastness unto his Lord Jesus Christ, whom
he confessed even unto death. </p>

</div><div id="
 92"> 

<p>Jerome states that his body, which, it seems, was taken out of
the fire, was buried in the same place where he died. <i>Joh.
Gysii Hist. Mart., fol. 11,</i> Col. <i>4. Konst-tooneel van
veertig, in the life of Thownas.</i></p>

<h2>MATTHEW, THE HOLY EVANGELIST, NAILED TO THE GROUND, AND BEHEADED AT NAD-DAVAR, UNDER KING HYTACUS, ABOUT A. D. 70</h2> 

<p>Matthew , also called Levi, the son of Alpheus, was a
publican in Capernaum. The publicans were detested by the Jews,
because the latter did not consider themselves justly bound to
pay toll or tribute to any foreign prince. Matt. 9:9; Mark
3:18; Luke 5:29. As touching the condition of publicans at that
time, it was such that they generally exacted more from the
people than was just; on which account they were shunned by the
pious, so that open sinners, who were separated from the
church, were compared to publicans. Matt. 9:11; 18:17.</p>

<p>When Matthew, or Levi, was still unconverted, and made his
living in this unjust business, Christ met him with His grace,
and commanded him to follow Him as a disciple. Obeying through
an inward impulse, he forsook the customhouse, and, having
prepared a great feast for the occasion of taking leave of his
companions, he invited his fellow publicans, and also the Lord
Jesus; apparently for an adieu, that they might find
opportunity to become converted through the discourse of the
Lord Jesus.</p>

<p>After this, Matthew immediately forsook all, and zealously
followed his Lord, who had called him, and who, after He had
more fully instructed him, placed him among the apostles, which
office he, too, exercised among the Jews, till the death of
Christ. Matt. 10:3; Luke 6:15.</p>

<p>Afterwards, when he was sent out to teach among the heathen,
Ethiopia fell to his lot. But before he left Judea, he, through
the illumination of the Holy Spirit wrote his Gospel, in the
Hebrew language, and left it to them. <i>Euseb. lib.</i> 5,
<i>cap. 1. Joh. Gys. Niceph. lib.</i> 3, <i>cap.</i> 20.
<i>Second. J. Gys.</i></p>

<p>In Ethiopia he accomplished much, with teaching as well as
with miracles; and there he also left unto posterity after his
death his written Gospel, from which it can easily be seen what
faith he maintained, namely, the faith in Jesus Christ, the Son
of God, that He became a real man, through the power of the
Holy Ghost, in His mother Mary. Matt. 1st chapter,
throughout.</p>

<p>History states that immediately after the death of King
Aeglippus, who was attached to the Christians, his' successor
Hytacus, an unbelieving heathen, persecuted this apostle, and
that at a certain time, when this pious apostle of Christ was
teaching the church of God, he caused him to be apprehended
and, as some write, nailed to the ground, and beheaded, in
Naddavar, the capital of Ethiopia, where he is also buried,
according to Venantius Fortunatus, who wrote, over a thousand
years ago,"For the great city Naddavar shall restore to us at
the last day the eminent apostle Matthew." <i>J. Gys. in Hist.
Mart., fol.</i> 12, Col. 2. Also, <i>Konst-tooneel van veertig,
in the life of Matthew.</i> Also, P, 1. Twisck, <i>Bybelsch
Ncpmbwch, fol.</i> 65, Col. 2, <i>letter M.</i> This writer
states that he was fastened to the ground with darts, whereupon
death ensued. <i>Joh. Gys.,</i> from <i>henantius Fortunatus,
de Gaud. hitcr, lib.</i> 7.</p>

<h2>SIMON ZELOTES AND HIS BROTHER JUDAS THADDEUS, BOTH SLAIN FOR THE TRUTH OF CHRIST THE ONE CRUCIFIED, AND THE OTHER BEATEN TO DEATH WITH STICKS, ABOUT A. D. 70</h2> 

<p>Simon the Canaanite, surnamed Zelotes, that is, Zealot, the
son of Alpheus, the brother of James, Joses, and Juda, and a
relative of Christ, was constituted by Christ one of His twelve
apostles, to preach the Gospel, first among the Jews, and
afterwards among the heathen; to which end he, together with
the others who were in like ministry with him, received the
Holy Ghost on the day of Pentecost. Matt. 10:<i>4; Acts</i>
1:13; Matt. 13:55; Mark 6:3.</p>

<p>He traveled in Egypt, Cyrene, Africa, Mauritania, throughout
Lybia, and in the islands of Great Britain, where he preached
the Gospel. <i>Isid. de Vita et Mort.</i> 5, 5. <i>Niceph.,
lib.</i> 2, <i>cap. 40.</i></p>

<p>Afterwards having preached everywhere, writes <i>N.</i> D.
C., he came to the Western Sea, also into England, and their
neighboring places.</p>

<p>Finally, it is stated by others, he went to Persia, where he
found his brother Judas. Continuing together steadfastly in the
duties of their apostleship, they sealed the divine truth with
their blood.</p>

<p>Concerning Simon Zelotes in particular, it is stated that he
was crucified in a very painful way by a certain governor in
Syria. <i>Bybelsch Ncpmbcech, Letter S. on the name Simon,
fol.</i> 570, Col. 1, from <i>Eus. and Niceph., and Hist.
Andrcp, fol.</i> 18, <i>Konst-tooneel van veertig, in the life
of Simon Zelotes.</i></p>

<p>As regards his brother Judas, surnamed Lebbeus, and also,
Thaddeus, who was likewise an apostle of Jesus Christ, nothing
is said of him in Evangelical history; only there is mention
made of a question which he asked the Lord Jesus, saying, Lord,
how is it that thou wilt manifest thyself unto us, and not unto
the world? Matt. 10:3; Mark 3:18; John 14:22.</p>

<p>It was this apostle who also wrote a comforting letter to
the believers, in which he admonishes them to remain steadfast
in the faith once received; and threatens the unbelievers with
the severe judgment of God.</p>

<p>In accordance with the division of the world made by the
apostles for the preaching of the Gospel, he traveled in
Mesopotamia, Syria, Arabia,</p>

</div><div id="93"> 

<p>and as far as Edessa. Finally, having gone to Persia, he
there reproved and opposed the pagan idolatry; on which account
he was beaten to death by the idolatrous priests, who were
losing their gain. <i>Isidor. and Niceph., Sabell. Enece. 7,
lib. 14. Bybelsch Ncrmbcrck, letter 1., on the name of Judas
Thaddeus, fol. 535. Konst-tooneel, etc., in the life of Judas
Thaddeus, or Lebbeus.</i></p>

<p>Simon the Canaanite, or Zelotes, who was a son of Alpheus,
is not distinguished by some from Simon the bishop at
Jerusalem, who was a son of Cleophas; hence has originated the
error that Simon Zelotes is said to have been killed A. D.
<i>108</i> (see <i>Byb. Ncemb., fol. 870, col. 1),</i> which,
properly, is to be understood of Simon, the bishop at
Jerusalem, the son of Cleophas; for Simon Zelotes and his
brother Judas Thaddeus, according to testimony, were killed
towards the close of the persecution by Nero, or about A. D.
<i>70.</i></p>

<h2>MATTHIAS, THE HOLY APOSTLE OF CHRIST, TIED ON A CROSS UPON A ROCK, STONED, AND THEN BEHEADED, A, D. 70</h2> 

<p>Matthias, according to the opinion of some, was of the royal
house of David; and from his youth was well instructed in the
law of God, at Bethlehem. He was one of the seventy disciples
of Christ; but shortly after the Lord's ascension, Judas
Iscariot, having faithlessly departed from his apostleship, and
taken his own life, the remaining eleven apostles, and one
hundred and twenty men, through prayer to God, and by the lot,
unanimously elected him in place of the aforementioned
faithless Judas, an apostle and ambassador of Jesus Christ, to
preach the Gospel, according to the command of the Lord, to all
nations, and to baptize the believers. Acts <i>1:23-26.</i></p>

<p>Afterwards he and the other eleven apostles were scourged by
the Jewish council, for the name of Jesus Christ, and commanded
that they should preach no more in the name of Jesus Christ.
Acts <i>5:38-40.</i> But they departed from the council,
rejoicing that they were counted worthy to suffer shame for His
name. And daily in the temple, and in every house, they ceased
not to teach and preach Jesus Christ.</p>

<p>After the separation of the apostles, who went everywhere to
preach, Matthias, according to the opinion of Jerome,
penetrated far into Ethiopia, where no other apostle had been,
into the very in</p></div><div id="
 94"> <br />

<p>terior of the land, yea, to the uttermost ends, to the inlet
of the creek or river Asphar and Hyssus; where the most
ignorant and barbarous people were. Unto these people, sitting
as they were, in the deepest darkness and ignorance, there
arose, through the ministry of this apostle, the true light of
the Gospel. But, after having there gained many souls to
Christ, he returmed, according to history, to Judea, Galilee,
and Samaria. namely, as in consequence of the dispersion of the
apostles, the Jews who dwelt in those parts, could not enjoy
the benefits of the ministry of the holy Gospel, unto their
conversion. <i>Hieron. in Catad. Script. Eccl. Isidor. Naucler.
Sabell. and Anthon., in Hist. Matthiae.</i></p>

<p>Concerning the end or martyrdom of Matthias, some write that
he would not sacrifice to. the false god Jupiter, and was
therefore put to death by the heathen. Others, however, state
that for the blasphemy which the Jews said he had committed
against God, Moses, and the law, he was sentenced by their high
priest, first to be hung on a cross and stoned, and afterwards
beheaded with an ax. In short, when he would not deny Jesus,
his Saviour, but steadfastly confessed Him, his sentence was
his: ',Thy blood be upon thy head, for thine own mouth hath
spoken against thee." Thereupon, having been tied on a cross,
as some write, or conducted upon a rock, as others say, he was
stoned, and finally, according to the sentence, beheaded.
<i>Joh. Gys., in Hist. Mart., fol. 13, cot. 2, ex Anton., in
part 1. Also, Konst-tooneel, etc., in the life of Matthias.
Also, P. J Twisck in the Byb.elsch Ncpynbcpck, letter M. on the
nanie Matthias, fol. 652, cot. 1, 2.</i></p>

<h2>SOME OF THE SEVENTH DISCIPLES OF CHRIST, AND SEVERAL FELLOW TRAVELERS OF THE APOSTLES, SLAIN, TOWARDS THE CLOSE OF THE PERSECUTION BY NERD, ABOUT A. D. 70</h2> 

<p>Prochorus,. one of the first seven deacons at Jerusalem, a
nephew of the pious martyr Stephen, and companion of the
apostle John, but afterwards bishop of the church at Bithynia,
in Macedonia, suffered and died at Antioch.</p>

<p>Nicanor, also one of the first seven deacons at Jerusalem,
was likewise executed for the truth's sake.</p>

</div><div id="95"> 

<p>Likewise Parmenas, also one of the seven deacons.</p>

<p>Olympus was imprisoned at Rome with Paul, for the Gospel's
sake.</p>

<p>Carpus, a servant of Paul, and afterwards bishop of the
church at Troas, was put to death in that place, for the
faith.</p>

<p>Trophimus, Paul's companion, was beheaded for the truth of
Christ.</p>

<p>Maternus and Egystus, two of the seventy disciples of
Christ, together with Marianus, the Christian deacon, were put
to death in Germany, for the faith.</p>

<p>Hermagoras, bishop of the church at Aquileia, ordained
thereto by Peter, suffered likewise under Nero.</p>

<p>Onesimus, Dionysius, Areopagitae, and others, also died at
that time for the divine truth.</p>

<p>This persecution, which was originated by Nero, continued a
long time, extending even into the time of Vespasian; so that
it is stated that in the third year of his reign, there was put
to death in the city of Ravenna, for confessing Christ,
Apollinaris, a disciple of Peter, with many others, whose names
are not mentioned.</p>

<h2>OF THE SECOND PERSECUTION OF THE CHRISTIANS, UNDER DOMITIAN, WHICH COMMENCED A. D. 93; IN WHICH, AMONG OTHERS, THERE WERE APPREHENDED, BANISHED, OR SLAIN, THE FOLLOWING PERSONS:</h2> 

<h2>LUKE, THE HOLY EVANGELIST, HANGED ON A GREEN OLIVE TREE, IN GREECE, A. D. 93</h2> 

<p>Luke, the third among the holy evangelists, was, according
to the testimony of the ancients, a Syrian of Antioch, and by
occupation a physician. <i>Bybelsch Nwmbwck, about Luke,</i>
from <i>Euseb. and Hieron. Col. 4:14.</i></p>

<p>It was the will of the Lord to use him as a physician of
souls; to which end he has left to mankind two excellent books
on spiritual medicine; namely, his holy Gospel and the Acts of
the holy Apostles.</p>

<p>Concerning his parents there is nowhere anything mentioned;
hence little or almost no account can be given of his natural
descent, excepting his birthplace, and that he descended from
the Syrian nation. It is supposed that he had no wife; though
nearly all the other apostles and evangelists were married.</p></div><div id="
 96"> <br />

<p>According, to the, opinion of Jerome, he was, before his
conversion, a Jewish proselyte, though of Gentile descent;
which is quite probable, since, according to the judgment of
linguists, his style is far more excellent and perfect in Greek
than in Hebrew. <i>Jolt. Gys., in Hist. Mart. ex
Hieronimo.</i></p>

<p>He afterwards, through the preaching of Paul, became a
Christian A.D. 38, after he had come from Thebes to Antioch.
<i>Konst-tooneel, etc., ivy the life of Luke.</i></p>

<p>He became a disciple of the apostles, but especially a
traveling companion of the, apostle Paul, so that he was with
him in many perils and difficulties an sea and on land.</p>

<p>He was so intimate with Paul, and his special friend to such
a degree that, according to the ancients, he wrote the -Gospel
under his dictation and instruction. He had also given a
faithful account of Paul's principal travels until his first
imprisonment at Rome. <i>Joh. Gys. Hist. Mart., concerning Luke
the evangelist.</i></p>

<p>Paul makes frequent mention of him in his epis-.ties; for to
the Colossians he writes, "Luke, the physician, . . . greet you"
(Col. 4:14). To Philemon, "There salute thee Epaphras, my fel
low prisoner in Christ Jesus; Marcus Aristarchus; Demos, Lucas,
my fellowlabourers" ( Philem. 23; 24). Likewise, to
Timothy, "Only Luke is with me" ( II Tim. 4:11) .</p>

<p>Luke was therefore, as it appears, a companion of Paul, not
only in his travels, but also during his imprisonment at Rome:
So that he was twice brought, , together with Paul, before the
Emperor Nero. <i>P. J. Twisck, taken</i> from Paul's epistles
to Timothy.</p>

<p>Respecting: his end, some write that, while preaching in
Greece, he was hanged by the ungodly to a. green olive tree;
others relate that he was in the eighty-fourth year of his age,
at the time of his death. <i>Bybelsch Ncembwch, letter</i> L.,
on the <i>name Luke,</i> fol. <i>624, col. 1, Konst-tooneel van
veertig,</i></p>

<h2>ANTIPAS, THE, FAITHFUL WITNESS OF JESUS
CHRIST, BURNED AT PERGAMOS IN A RED-HOT BRAZEN OX, A, D. 95</h2> 

<p>Antipas was an upright man and a pious witness of the San of
God; Who, in proof of his faith, tasted death, rather than
dishonor his Saviour, by denying Him, or otherwise. This
happened in the life-</p>

</div><div id="97"> 

<p>time of the apostle John. Hence he may be reckoned one of
the first of those who suffered, during the time of Domitian,
for the testimony of Jesus Christ.</p>

<p>Of this hero and knight of God, the Lord Himself made
mention to His servant John, yea, commanded him, to write to
the teacher at Pergamos concerning him, saying, "To the angel of
the church in Pergamos write: These things saith he which hath
the sharp sword with two edges; I know thy works, and where
thou dwellest, even where Satan's seat is: and thou holdest
fast my name, and host not denied my faith, even in those days,
wherein Antipas was my faithful martyr, who was slain among
you, where Satan dwelleth" (Rev. 2:12-14).</p>

<p>Touching the time and manner of his death, there is nothing
stated in Holy Writ; but some of the ancient writers maintain
that he was enclosed in a red-hot brazen ox, and thus burned
alive with great pain, yet in steadfastness. As regards the
time when this happened, we ascertain from Holy Scripture, that
he was killed in the lifetime of John. Some fix this occurrence
in the time of Domitian of about A.D. 95.-See concerning this,
<i>A. Mel[., Ist Book, van de Hist. der Vervolg, en
Martel.,</i> printed <i>A. D.</i> 1619, fol. 22, col. 1. Also,
<i>d' Annotation der Laetste Bybelsch Oversettinge,</i> Rev.
2:12,13.</p>

<h2>JOHN, THE HOLY EVANGELIST, BANISHED TO THE ISLE OF PATMOS, BY EMPEROR DOMITIAN, A. D. 97</h2> 

<p>John, the apostle and evangelist, was a son of Zebedee, and
brother of James the Greater; he was born at Nazareth, and by
occupation was a fisherman. Matt. 4:21. He was called by
Christ, when engaged with his father and brother in mending
their nets for fishing. Verse 22. As soon as he heard the words
of Christ, he immediately left the nets, the ship, and his
father, and, together with James, his beloved brother, followed
Christ. <i>Chrysost. Homil. 1., in Joh.</i></p>

<p>Afterwards he became from a disciple an apostle of Christ,
and was numbered with the twelve whom the Lord had specially
chosen for His service. Matt. 10:2.</p>

<p>He was greatly beloved by the Lord, so that at the Supper he
reclined on Christ's bosom, and leaned, or rested, on His
breast. John 13:23; 21: 20. The Lord, moreover, had accepted
him as one of His three most special friends, to bear testimony
of His works, not only in His conflict and suffering in the
garden of Gethsemane, but also in His glory, in the raising of
the daughter of Jairus as well as in the showing forth of His
majesty, when, on the holy mount, His face shone as the sun,
and His raiment became white as the light. Matt. 26:36; Luke
8:51; Matt. 17:1-4.</p>

<p>From an inward love, he followed the Lord not only into the
house of the priest Caiaphas, but also to Mount Calvary,
without the city of Jerusalem, where the Lord was put to death.
There the Lord, hanging on the cross, addressed him,
saying,"Son, behold thy mother!" ( John 19:27 ) .</p>

<p>He was so eager after the resurrection of Christ, that in
running to His grave with his fellow apostle Peter, he outran
the latter, thus showing his affection for his Lord, who had
died an ignominious death, and was entirely forsaken by His
other friends. John 20:4.</p>

<p>Some years afterwards, in order to refute the errors. of
Ebion and Cerinthus, who denied the divinity of Christ, he
wrote his Gospel, to the honor and magnifying of His Saviour,
commencing thus"In the beginning was the Word, and the Word was
with God, and the Word was God. The same was in the beginning
with God. All things were made by him; and without him was not
anything made that was made." <i>"And the Word was made
flesh,"</i> etc., John 1:1-14. In these words he gives us to
understand the true incarnation of the Son of God, to whom be
praise and glory forever. Amen.</p>

<p>John is called throughout the Gospel the beloved of the
Lord, or the disciple"whom Jesus loved;" because the Lord so
especially loved him John 13:23; 20:2; 21:20.</p>

<p>But since it is the will of God to bring His children to
glory through much tribulation and distress, this beloved
friend of God, John, also could not escape, but was tried
throughout his life, with manifold tribulations, according to
what the Lord had told him and his brother James, "Ye shall
indeed drink of the cup that I drink of; and with the baptism
that I am baptized withal shall ye be baptized," that is, ye
shall also be subjected to my suffering and distress. Mark
10:39.</p>

<p>This was afterwards fulfilled in him in manifold ways; for,
besides what ancient writers have recorded concerning it,
namely, that at Rome he was put into a vat full of boiling oil,
but was miraculously delivered out of it, the merits of which
account we leave unquestioned; this much, according to the
Scriptures, is certain, namely that he spent a long time on the
desert island of Patmos, whither he had been banished, for the
testimony of Jesus Christ. Concerning this, John himself makes
this declaration, Rev. 1:9, "I, John, who also am your brother
and companion in tribulation, and in the kingdom and patience
of Jesus Christ, was in the isle Patmos, for the word of God,
and for the testimony of Jesus Christ."</p>

<p>But by whom, and in what manner he was banished to that
desert island, is not stated in the Scriptures, except that he
was in tribulation for the Word of God. Some of the ancient
writers, however, state that he was banished by Emperor
Domitian, about A. D. 97; who, in his wrath .and displeasure,
because he preached the Word of God, and confessed Christ as
the Son of God, had him sentenced and banished thither.</p>

<p>On this island, which lies in the Mediterranean, between
Asia Minor and Greece, one hundred and</p>

</div><div id="98"> <br />

<p>twenty-five miles north-westward of Jerusalem, he was indeed
forsaken of men, and had scarcely any companionship, aside from
poisonous and noxious animals, which dwelt in the place;
nevertheless, the Lord God dwelt with him with His heavenly
consolation, and during his banishment presented and revealed
to him, very beautiful scenes and glorious visions concerning
the condition of the church of God to the end of the world.</p>

<p>How he wrote his Apocalypse or Revelation, an excellent
book, full of divine and truthful prophecies, taken from the
preceding visions and heavenly sights; some of which are
already fulfilled, and others remain to be fulfilled.</p>

<p>As the time of his deliverance began to draw nigh, the Lord
spoke to him on this island, saying,"Behold, I come quickly,
Amen." Whereupon John replied with a well-comforted soul,"Even
so come, Lord Jesus." Rev. 22:20.</p>

<p>When the Emperor Domitian, who had banished him to the
aforesaid island, was dead, and Nerva reigned in his stead, he
was delivered and brought back to Ephesus, where he had
previously been bishop of the church. This occurred, according
to history, about A. D. 99; consequently, his confinement there
lasted two years. The ancients write that he suffered much yet
for the name of Christ, and was compelled to drink poison, yet
remained unharmed, according to the promise of Christ; and that
he finally died in peace at Ephesus, in the time of the Emperor
Trajan, having served in the holy Gospel for fifty-one years,
and being eighty years old: and thus this great light rests in
Asia. <i>Joh. Gys. Hist. Mart., fol.</i> 14, col. 2, <i>from
Euseb. Hist. Eccl. and Epiphanio., Joh. Gys., ibidem ,. from
Euseb., lib.</i> 3, cap. 20, 23, <i>Niceph, lib.</i> 3, cap. 4,
<i>Iren., lib.</i> 3, cap. 3. Also, <i>Konst-tooneel, in the
life of John. Also, Bybelsch Ncpmbcpck, letter J. on the name
John,</i> fol. 538, col. 2, <i>and fol.</i> 539, col. <i>1, 2,
also, fol.</i> 540, col. 1.</p>

<h2>TIMOTHY, THE SPIRITUAL SON OF THE APOSTLE PAUL, STONED TO DEATH BY THE HEATHEN IDOLATERS AT EPHESUS, ABOUT A D. 98</h2> 

<p>Timothy was a native of Lystra in Lycaonia. His father was a
Greek, but his mother and grandmother, though of Jewish
descent, were Christian</p>

</div><div id="99"> 

<p>believers, the one named Eunice, the other Lois; by whom he
was instructed from his youth in the holy Scriptures. Acts
16:1; II Tim. 1:5.</p>

<p>Timothy was well reported of by the brethren that were at
Lystra and Iconium; wherefore Paul received him as his
companion in the ministry of the holy Gospel among the
Gentiles. Acts 16:2, 3.</p>

<p>Paul loved him with a godly love, and called him his dearly
beloved son in the Lord. II Tim. 1:2. He afterwards appointed
him bishop or teacher of the church, and commended to him the
flock of Jesus his Saviour, with the admonition, uprightly to
feed and govern the same; to which end he wrote two special
epistles to him., "O.Timothy," he writes,"keep that which is committed to thy
trust, avoiding profane and vain babblings, and oppositions of
science falsely so called" (I Tim. 6:20).</p>

<p>Further, "This charge I commit unto thee, son Timothy,
according to the prophecies which went before on thee . . . .
Through faith and a ,good conscience" (1:18).</p>

<p>In another place: ."Thou, therefore, my son, be strong in
the grace that is in Christ Jesus. And the things that thou
hast heard of me among many witnesses, the same commit thou to
faithful men, who shall be able to teach others also" (II Tim.
2:1, 2).</p>

<p>In this ministry Timothy acquitted himself as an upright
evangelical preacher, until it pleased God, to let him finish
his course, not by a common death, but by martyrdom; so that
he, with his spiritual father Paul, who had steadfastly
preceded him, and especially with his Lord Christ Jesus, who
had gone through the conflict many years before, might enjoy
the unfading crown of honor in the life of bliss. Thus it
happened afterwards, according to history, that, having been
bishop at Ephesus for fifteen years, he was there stoned to
death by the heathen, whose idolatry he had reproved. This is
stated to have taken place in the reign of Domitian, or about
A. D. 98, though some have fixed it in the time of Nero. Ioh,
Gysii <i>Hist. Mart., fol. 14,</i> col. 4, also, <i>Bybelsch
Nambock, letter T. on the name Timothy, fol.</i> 925, Col.
vJB.</p>

<h2>URTICINUS, A PIOUS CHRISTIAN, BEHEADED WITH THE AX, AT RAVENNA, A. D. 99</h2> 

<p>Next to Timothy is placed Urticinus or Ursinius, a physician
at Ravenna in Italy. Having been reported to the judge
Paulinus, as being a Christian, he was tortured in manifold
ways for the name of Christ. Having borne all with constancy,
and still refusing to sacrifice to the gods of the heathen, he
was finally sentenced by the judge, to be beheaded with the
ax.</p>

<p>When Urticinus received this sentence of death, he began to
tremble and shake before the impending death, and to deliberate
with himself, whether he should deny Christ, or how he might
the most easily escape death. But while he was thus counseling
with flesh and blood, one of the company of judge Paulinus,
whose name was Vitalus, stepped up to him from behind, and
strengthened him with these words, "My beloved brother in
Christ, Urticinus, who, as a faithful physician, by the
potions, didst so often and so happily restore to health the
sick, take heed, lest by thy denial thou plunge thyself into
eternal death and damnation."</p>

<p>Through this admonition Urticinus regained such courage,
that he joyfully prepared for death, and, having of his own
accord offered his neck to the ax, he thus, through the
separation of his head from the body, came to a godly and noble
end. See concerning this, A. <i>Mell., 1st book, van de Hist.
der hervolg., fol</i>. 18, col. 3 and 4, according <i>Tenant.
Fortunat., lib.</i> 4. <i>hitce S. Martini, Hieronym. Rub.
Hilt. Raven., lib. 1. Beda, Usard. Ado: Vincent, Spec. Hist.,
lib.</i> 9, <i>cap. 50. holateran. in AntrhoQal. Pet. Dam., in
Senn. de S. S. Vitale and haleria.</i></p>

<h2>VITALUS, BURIED ALIVE AT RAVENNA FOR THE NAME OF JESUS CHRIST; AND HIS WIFE BEATEN TO DEATH WITH STICKS, AT MILAN, ABOUT A. D. 99</h2> 

<p>Vitalus, before his conversion, was a Roman knight and
citizen of Milan. He had come to Ravenna with Paulinus, the
judge; but when he perceived the blood' thirstiness of his
lord, whom he had hitherto served faithfully according to the
manner of the world, he bravely left him, and straightway
enrolled himself under the banner of Christ, but was very soon
apprehended by the enemies of truth. For Paulinus, his lord,
not knowing why he had left him, but having learned that he had
encouraged Urticinus-who had just before been beheaded with the
ax, for the faith-when the latter wavered, and that he had
restrained him from sac- rificing to the gods; likewise, that
he had buried him after his death, conceived a suspicion that
he also must be a Christian. Upon this suspicion, and through
the accusations of others, he had the pious Vitalus
apprehended, and having found from his own confession, that he
was really a Christian, he caused him to be put on the rack, to
try him whether he would not apostatize from Christ.</p>

<p>Thereupon Vitalus addressed Paulinus, the criminal judge, in
these words, "You must certainly be deprived of your reason, to
think that I should be deceived by you, and brought to eternal
suffering in soul and body, while I have sought to deliver
others from the danger of delusion."</p>

<p>A wicked heathen priest, perceiving that he adhered firmly
to Christ, and would in no wise do honor to the gods, advised
Paulinus to bury Vitalus alive. Paulinus, following the evil
suggestion of this priest, had a deep pit dug down to the
water, at the place where the Christians were usually
executed-called ad Palmam because a palm tree stood there-and
had Vitalus buried in it, up to the</p>

</div><div id="100"> <br />

<p>middle( of his body), and then covered up with stones and
earth.</p>

<p>Now when Valeria, the wife of Vitalus, after the death and
burying alive of her husband, returned home from Ravenna to
Milan, where she resided and had her children, she could not
remain concealed long, but made herself known to be a Christian
woman; for when she was constrained to eat of that which was
offered to idols, she very steadfastly refused and resisted,
yea, moreover, openly reproved the idolaters, saying,"I am a
Christian, and can, therefore, in no wise eat that which is
offered to Sylvanus, your god."</p>

<p>Thereupon these idolaters seized her, and beat her to death
with sticks. She was buried at Milan by the Christians. This
happened by virtue of the first persecution, or the edict of
Nero, which, it is stated, remained in force under Vespasian
and under Domitian. <i>A.:dell. Hist., fol.~ 16, col. 3, about
Luke.</i></p>

<p>Concerning this martyrdom see the above mentioned authors,
annotated with regard to Urticinus.</p>

<h2>OF DIFFERENT OTHER PERSONS WHO WERE SLAIN FOR THE NAME OF CHRIST ABOUT A. D. 100</h2> 

<p>According to ancient history there were also slain for the
testimony of the Son of God; In France, Lucianus, bishop of the
church of Bellovaco; Maximianus and Julianus, elders; Nicasius,
bishop of the church of Rouen; Quirinus, an elder; Scubiculus,
a deacon; Pascientia, a virgin. In Italy, Romulus, bishop of
the church of Fesula, and others, in different places. 7. Gys.
<i>Hist. Mart., fol</i>. 14, col. 4.</p>

<p>It is further recorded, that Marsilius Glabrio also had to
suffer for the name of Christ and the true faith.</p>

<p>At this time (it is stated in the <i>Introduction to the
Martyrs' Mirror to the Defenseless Christians fol. 36, col.
2,)</i> "The Christians were so little esteemed, that they were
called cobblers, as may be seen from a heathen author,
according to Baronius."</p>

</div><div id="101"> 

<br />

<h1>AN ACCOUNT OF THE BAPTISM OF THE HOLY MARTYRS IN THE SECOND CENTURY</h1>

<h2>SUMMARY OF BAPTISM IN THE SECOND CENTURY</h2> 

<p>The witnesses as regards the ordinance of the baptism of
Jesus Christ, who have written in this century, are few, and
their accounts are brief, but mostly clear and conclusive.
First appears one Dionysius, surnamed Alexandrinus, who writes
to his friend Sixtus about a certain brother, who considered
the baptism of the heretics no baptism at all, and, therefore
requested to be rebaptized.</p>

<p>He is followed by Justinus, who, in his letters written in
defense of the Christians, as well as in his disputation with
Tryphon, the Jew, speaking of baptism, treats of it throughout
as of the,baptism of Christ, which was administered to
adults.</p>

<p>Then comes one Gratianus, who declares himself against
retaliation; and also another (noticed in the margin), who was
censured because he held that the body of Christ was not of the
substance of Mary.</p>

<p>Then follows Clemens Alexandrinus, who no-. where speaks of
infant baptism, though he treats much of baptism, and of its
conditions and circumstances.</p>

<p>Then follows a certain testimony, from Walafridus Strabo,
proving that in those early times it was not customary to
baptize otherwise than in running water, and that only such
persons were baptized, who were able to know and understand the
benefits to be obtained in baptism.</p>

<p>The conclusion is taken from the 7th chapter of <i>De
Ratione Gubernationes Ecclesice,</i> in which we read, that now
there were baptized those who had previously been instructed in
the principal articles of faith., With this we have concluded
this century.</p>

<p>NOTE.-Since we have not come across any particular authors
as regards the matter of baptism, with the first years of this
century, we are compelled to begin with the year 126, and to
proceed thence on; which method we shall also pursue in some of
the other centuries.</p>

<p><i>About the year</i> 126.-The first place in our account of
baptism in the second century, we shall accord to Dionysius
Alexandrinus,* of whom it is stated (from his 5th book on
Baptism) that he wrote to Sixtus, the bishop at Rome, as
follows</p>

<p>There was with us a brother who had been a believer a long
time, before ever I or my predecessor Heraclas was ordained
bishop. Being present among those who were baptized, and
hearing the questions put to them, and their replies, he came
to me weeping, fell down at my feet, and began to confess that
he had received baptism from the heretics in an entirely
different manner, which baptism, since he saw that we
administered baptism differ-</p>

<br /><cite>* As regards the time of this Dionysius we
follow the date given by P. J. Twisk, A.D. 126; to distinguish
between him and the martyr Dionysius Alexandrinus, who suffered
under Valerianus and Galhenus, about A. D. 260. ently, he did
not consider baptism at all. He therefore entreated to be
cleansed and purified with the baptism of the Christian church,
that he might receive the grace of the Holy Ghost.</cite> 

<p>Finally he writes these words: He (namely, the man mentioned
above, who wished to be rebaptized) ceased not to sigh and to
weep, and dared not to come to the Lord's table, and,
admonished and constrained by us, would scarcely venture to be
present at common prayer.</p>

<p>In regard to this, Eusebius Pamphilius of Caesarea, who has
annotated this, writes thus: These and many other such
questions concerning rebaptizing are noted by Dionysius
throughout his books. <i>Euseb., lib. 7,</i> cap. 8, <i>from.
Dionysius.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-P. J. Twisck discriminates this Dionysius Alexandrius
from another Dionysius, who, about A. D. 231, after Origen, was
a teacher of the scholars of the faith, at Alexandria. See
<i>Chron.</i> 3d <i>Book for the year</i> 231, <i>page 61, col.
1.</i> Also, <i>for the year</i> 253, <i>page 71, eol.
1.</i></p>

<p>Of the martyrdom of the latter we shall speak in the proper
place, under the persecution of Valerianus and Gallienus.
Others, however, hold that it was one and the same Dionysius,
who wrote this, and suffered martyrdom. But this matters
little, since the matters themselves, as stated by these
writers, agree in general. We will leave this to the judgment
of the intelligent reader.</p>

<p>From the above it is evident, first, that baptism was
administered after previous examination, because it is
said, "Being present among those who were baptized, and hearing
the questions put to them, and their replies;" which agrees
with the manner in which Philip proceeded with the Ethiopian,
before he baptized him: the one asked, the other answered, and
then followed baptism. Acts 8:36-38.</p>

<p>Moreover, since Eusebius states, that Dionysius notes many
such questions of rebaptizing throughout his books, it follows
incontrovertibly, that rebaptizing, or, at least, baptizing
aright, those who had not been rightly baptized, must have been
practiced, or at least advocated by some at that time; else it
would not have been necessary to note any questions in regard
to it; whereas much was written in that day, concerning it, as
Eusebius has shown from Dionysius.</p>

<p><i>About the year</i> 140.-Justinus, who was surnamed
Philosophus, because before his conversion, he was instructed
in philosophy, comes next in order after Dionysius
Alexandrinus. In his second defence of the Christians, to the
Emperors Titus, Aelius, Adrianus, Antonius, Pius, etc.
(according to the annotation of H. <i>Montanus Nietigh.z.,</i>
p. 5), he writes thus, "We shall also relate to you, how we
being renewed through Christ, have offered ourselves up to God,
lest, this being omitted, it might seem, that in some parts of
this statement we have not been faithful. As many, then, as are
convinced, and believe that what we teach and</p>

</div><div id="102"> 

<p>36820 51-100</p>

<p>say is true, and promise to live 'accordingly, to the best
of their ability, are admonished to pray, and to ask God, with
fasting, for the forgiveness of past sins, we ourselves praying
and fasting with them. After that, we lead them to the water,
and they are then born again in the same manner of regeneration
in which we ourselves were born again, for then they are washed
with water, in the name of God, who is the Father and Lord of
us all, and of Jesus Christ, who is the Saviour of us all, and
of the Holy Ghost; for Christ says: 'Except ye be born again,
ye cannot enter into the kingdom of heaven.'"</p>

<p>These are certainly clear arguments, which confirm the
institution of Christ as regards baptism upon faith; for, when
justinus writes, "As many then, as are convinced, and believe,"
and adds, "are admonished to pray," and finally says, "After that, we
lead them to the water, and they are then born again in the
same manner of regeneration," that is to say (speaking by way
of metonymy), baptized; he certainly gives to understand with
this, that the candidates for .baptism, in his day, had to be
convinced; namely through the preached word, and had to
believe, and, also, that they had to be admonished to pray,
before they were led to the water, to be baptized, or, as he
calls it, regenerated.</p>

<p>A little further on in the same apology or defense, he
writes thus, "This, concerning this matter, we have learned from
the apostles; for, since we are ignorant by our first birth,
and have been brought up in evil practices and wicked habits;
therefore, in order that we may not remain children of
ignorance, but become children of free volition and of
knowledge, and may obtain the remission of sins committed,
there is invoked over those who voluntarily desire to be born
again, and who repent of their past sins, the name of God, the
Father and Lord of all men; and, invoking Him alone, we lead
the one to be baptized to the washing of water; and this
washing of water is called an enlightenment, because the
understanding of those who learn these things, becomes
enlightened. But those who become enlightened, are also washed,
that is, baptized, in the name of Jesus Christ, who was
crucified under Pontius Pilate, and in the name of the Holy
Spirit, who, through the prophets, has foretold all concerning
Christ." <i>H. Most. Nietighz., page 6, ex Justino.</i></p>

<p>From this it is again quite evident, that Justinus has in
view, nothing else than to give an account of the true baptism,
which Christ and His apostles taught that it should only be
administered upon faith and repentance for sins; for, when he
says, "Those who voluntarily desire to be baptized again, and
who repent of their past sins," and adds, "Invoking the name of
God, we lead the one to be baptized to the washing of water,"
he certainly says nothing else than what was said to those
baptized by John. Matt. 3:6, "And were baptized of him in
Jordan, confessing their sins," and what Peter said to the
contrite penitents, who inquired what they must do to be saved.
Acts 2:38, "Repent, and be baptized every one of you in the name
of Jesus Christ, for the remission of sins." The very same idea
is expressed here .by Justinus, as is shown.</p>

<p>Further on in the same apology or defense, Justinus writes
these words, "But we, after he who, being convinced, has become
of one mind with us, is thus washed, we lead him to those who
are called brethren, where they are assembled, ardently
offering up the common prayers, for ourselves, for him who is
enlightened, and for all other men, wherever they may be; that
we may be worthy to be disciples of the truth leading indeed a
good conversation, and be found observers of that which is
commanded us; in order that we may obtain eternal salvation."
<i>H. Most. Nietighz., page 7, ex Justino.</i></p>

<p>This is the third, citation from Justinus, from which it
appears certainly no more, than from the first two, that he
mentions any other baptism, than that upon faith and
repentance. For, when he says, "After he who, being convinced,
has become of one mind with us, is thus washed, we lead him to
those who are called brethren," he gives to understand with
this, that those who were washed, that is baptized, must first
be convinced, and consent to the doctrine, which agrees with
Christ's command, Matt. 28:19, "Go ye therefore, and teach (or,
make disciples of) all nations, baptizing them," and
mark, "Preach the gospel to every creature. He that believeth
and is baptized shall be saved."*</p>

<p>Jacob Mehrning, in his account of baptism in the second
century, cites from the <i>Centuries van Mcegdenborg</i> the
following words, "The teachers of the church of that time held,
that regeneration was effected through baptism and the Word, to
both of which together they ascribed a power, namely, the
forgiveness of sins, which required repentance from adults."
Many clear testimonies concerning this are found in
Justinus.</p>

<p>In the disputation with Tryphon, the Jew, he writes, "Through
the washing of water of repentance (Wasserbad der Busse), and
the knowledge of God, which has been instituted for the
forgiveness of the sins of the people, as Isaiah says, we
believe and feel assured, that this is the blessed baptism,
which was proclaimed in former times, and that this alone can
cleanse the penitent, yea, that this is a water of life."</p>

<p>A little further on he calls baptism a spiritual
circumcision acceptable to the merciful God. And in conclusion
he says, "Through water and faith, the regeneration of the whole
human race is effected." <i>Jac. Mehrn., Baptism. Histor., 2d
part, on the second century, page 202.</i></p>

<br /><cite>* In the year 141, justinus taught that is
matters of controversy we must in ge from tfte apostolic
writings."In the 119th question. Also, that the true church of
Christ must not be knows (is not distinguished) by the great
number of members, but by the doctrine."In the answer to the
first question." Also, in the"Geslachtregister der Roomscher
Successie, second edition, 1649, page 114.</cite> 

</div><div id="103"> 

<p>Justinus writes further, in the disputation with Tryphon,
the Jew, on the truth of the Christian religion, "Since we,
through Christ, are converted to the true God, we are
sanctified in baptism, and call upon Him as our helper, and
call Him our Redeemer. Before the power of this name, Satan
himself must fear and tremble." <i>Jac. Mehrn., page</i> 203.
<i>Baptism. Hist.,</i> 2d <i>Prt.</i></p>

<p>Who does not see clearly from these words of Justinus, in
the disputation with Tryphon, in the first as well as in the
second citation, that he employs such words and phrases as can
by no means be applied otherwise than to the true order of the
baptism of Christ and His apostles, namely, baptism which is
accompanied with faith and repentance? For in the first
citation he certainly says expressly, that baptism is a
<i>washing of water of repentance, and the knowledge of
God;</i> also, that it alone can cleanse the penitent; and
also, that through water and faith the regeneration of the
whole human race is effected. In the second citation he also
plainly says, "Since we, through Christ, are converted to the
true God, we are sanctified in baptism." How could any one more
clearly indicate the true practice of baptism, which must take
place with conversion to God? And such baptism, Justinus states
here, was practiced in the church of God in his time. O
glorious, holy, and most Christian transaction I</p>

<h2>NOTICE CONCERNING THE BOOK"QUIESTIONUM ET RESPONSIONUM," THAT IS, "QUESTIONS AND ANSWERS," WHICH IS WRONGFULLY ATTRIBUTED TO JUSTINUS</h2> 

<p>In the fifty-sixth question and answer of this book some
words are employed from which pedobaptists sometimes are wont
to conclude, that infant baptism was practiced in the days of
Justinus. But to this, various excellent and learned men have
replied long since, namely, that this book was never written by
Justinus; to prove which, different reasons are adduced, as,
far instance: That in the answer to the 115th question mention
is made of Irenius, who lived twenty-five years after Justinus,
but is nevertheless cited by the latter in his writings as his
predecessor. Moreover, that in the answer to the twelfth, and
also in that to the eightysixth question, Origen is mentioned,
who lived a whole century after Justinus. To this must be
added, that neither Eusebius nor Jerome, both of whom have each
compiled a complete catalogue of all the authentic writings of
Justinus, enumerate this book <i>Qu&amp;-stionus;</i> whereas
they mention the Second Defence of the Christians, and the
Disputation with Tryphon, from which we have adduced in full
several citations concerning baptism. Hence the aforementioned
book is justly rejected, as not being the work of Justinus. See
concerning this, <i>De Centuriator. Magdeub., Cent.</i> 2, cap.
10, <i>in the account o f the life of Justinus.</i> Also,
<i>Bellarm. in Tract van de Scribenten der Kerke.</i> Also,
<i>Jacob</i> <i>Mehrn., Baptism. Histor., 2nd Part, page 170,
171.</i> Also, A. <i>Montan. Nietighz. van den
Kinder-doocent;, second edition, A.</i> 1648, <i>page</i> 8,
9.</p>

<p>NOTE.-In 152, Valentinus Romanus was censured as a
<i>heretic</i>, because he believed that the Son of God,
<i>Christus Jesus, assumed neither a human nature, nor
fles</i>h and blood from the substance of the virgin Mary. P.
<i>1. Twisck, Chron. for the year</i> 152, 2d <i>Book, page</i>
42, col. <i>1, frown Herm. Med., fol</i>. 330, <i>Chron. Seb.
Fr.,</i> 106., <i>Jan. Crescent;., fol.</i> 34.</p>

<p><i>About the year</i> 160.- Gratianus quotes the words of
the Lord, "When they persecute you in this city flee ye into
another;" and say then, "Here Jesus Christ teaches that
Christians shall not repel weapon with weapon, but must flee
.before weapons." P. <i>J. Twisck, Chron.,</i> 2d <i>Book, for
the year</i> 160, cent;. 43, col. 1, 2, <i>from Seb. Fra. in
den Krieg des Fredes, fol.</i> 63.</p>

<p>From this explanation of Gratianus appears, how salutarily
and rightly he believed and taught with regards to the words of
Jesus Christ relative to the forsaking of revenge; from which
we may infer his correct views concerning other matters of Holy
Scripture and the Christian faith; but since, either through
default of the ancient writers, or for some other reason,
nothing else has come down to us from him, we shall be content
with what we have mentioned, and take our leave of him.*</p>

<p><i>About the year</i> 200.-About this time flourished
Clemens Alexandrinus, who, though writing largely on baptism,
nowhere mentions infant baptism, but employs throughout such
language as sufficiently implies, that he knew nothing of
infant baptism, but confined himself solely to the ordinance of
Christ and the practice of His apostles, which a baptism that
is accompanied with faith and repentance.</p>

<p>In <i>Pcedagog., lib. 1, chap.</i> 6, he writes thus, "This
is also done with us, whose example the Lord Christ has become.
Being baptized, we become enlightened; being enlightened, we
are made children; having been made children, we are brought to
perfection; having been brought to perfection, we are made
immortal." A little after that he says, "Thus also, when we are
baptized, we obtain a free, unobstructed, and clear eye of the
Holy Ghost, as an avengement of blindness; having trodden
underfoot the sins which hitherto obscured the divine Spirit."
Also, "That which was grievously bound by ignorance, is unbound
by knowledge, and these bands are loosed through the faith of
man and the grace of God, the manifold sins being forgiven
through reasonable** baptism as a perfect remedy; thus we are
washed from all sins, and are henceforth evil no more; this is
the grace of enlightenment, that the manner of life is no
longer the same that it was before we were</p>

<br /><cite>* A.D. 175, Ireneus taught that the bread of the
Supper was of the fruit of the earth, and he also calls the
Supper not an offering but a thanksgiving."Lib 4, contra
Valent." See in the"Geslachb register der Roomscher Successie,"
second edition, 1649, page 114.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* The words,"reasonable baptism," indicate that
he speaks of such a baptism as belongs to reasonable or
intelligent persons.</cite> 

</div><div id="104"> 

<p>baptized." Further, "Teaching or instruction
precedes faith, but faith conjointly with baptism is led and
directed through the Holy Ghost." And, "Even so we who repent of our former sins separate ourselves
from them and are being cleansed through baptism, let us run to
the eternal light, as children to their father." See further,
concerning these citations, <i>Jac. Mehrn., Bapt. Hist., 2d
Part, pages 213, 214.</i> Also, <i>H. Montan. Nietighz van den
Kinder-loop, pages 26, 27.</i></p>

<p>What is there in this testimony of Clemens Alexandrinus,
that can apply to infant baptism? yea, on the contrary, what is
there that does not militate against it? He certainly says
expressly, "These bands (namely, of sin) are loosed through the
faith of man, and the grace of God, the manifold sins being
forgiven through reasonable baptism." This certainly is a clear
and obvious joining together of faith and baptism, as things
which, through the providence of God, belong together, for the
remission of sins. When he further says, "Teaching, or
instruction, precedes faith, but faith conjointly with baptism
is led and directed through the Holy Ghost," there is
expressed, without controversy, the same thing that we have
said just now; since here not only faith is joined together
with baptism, but also instruction, which precedes faith, and
the Holy Ghost, who follows and confirms faith.</p>

<p>It is true, he says soon after this, that those who are
baptized are children, or, at least, ought to be. But what kind
of children? Not childen in understanding, not infants in the
cradle, but, as he further says, children in wickedness, but
perfect in the understanding. Children, who, as children of
God, have put off the old man, and the garment of wickedness,
and have put on the incorruptibility of Christ, in order that,
being regenerated, they may become a new and holy people, and
keep unspotted the new man. See the treatise cited above.</p>

<p>If at that time it was at all customary in Alexandria to
baptize infants, would it not have been appropriate here for
him, to speak of irrational infants, or at least to mention
with a word or two, that they, too, were entitled to baptism,
although, on account of their youth they could not understand
the object of it? Truly, according to our opinion he could not
well have omitted mentioning it; but, inasmuch as he does not
refer to it with a single word, it is good proof, that at that
time this abuse was not known there, or, at least, not
regarded.</p>

<p>Jacob Mehrning says <i>(Baptism. Hist. concerning the second
century, page 213), "Of</i> Clemens Alexandrinus we read that at
Alexandria he presided over the school in which the
catechumens, that is those who received instruction preparatory
to baptism; were taught the principles of the Christian faith."
<i>hicecomes, lib. 2, cap. 7.</i></p>

<p>From this <i>Padag., Clementis Alexandrini, lib.</i> 1, cap.
6, Vicecomes would prove that there was given to those who were
baptized, milk and honey o eat, and milk mixed with wine, to
drink; likewise, that after baptism, preaching took place and
peace was imparted to those baptized.</p>

<p>As regards the statement, that there was given to the
baptized, as a sign of God's blessing, milk and honey to eat,
and milk mixed with wine, to drink, we leave it to its own
merits, it being a matter of small importance, which, if done
without superstition, could either be observed or omitted. But
the preceding statement, that Clemens Alexandrinus presided
over the school in which the catechumens were taught the
principles of the Christian faith, certainly implies that the
candidates for baptism were first instructed in the school, in
the principles of the Christian faith, before they were
.baptized; and also, the final remark, that after baptism
preaching took place, and peace was imparted to the baptized,
certainly also indicates that those who were baptized were not
infants, for then they could not have understood the preaching,
much less would they have been qualified to receive with
attention and according to the requirements of Holy Scripture
the peace which was imparted to them.</p>

<p>NOTE.-Baudartius writes of Clemens Alexandrinus, that he
proclaimed the true religion with his mouth as well as with his
pen, saying among other things, "A pious and honorable man is
well content with little." <i>Apophth., edit. 1640, lib. 2,
page</i> 49.</p>

<h2>FURTHER REMARKS CONCERNING BAPTISM IN THIS CENTURY</h2> 

<p>From the writings of Walafridus Strabonus we may clearly
infer what manner of baptism was practiced at this time, in the
first as well as in the second century, and also along
afterwards, namely, that no infants, but adults, reasonable,
and believing persons were baptized, and this according to the
example of Christ a.id His holy apostles. Jac. <i>1, cap. 4.
Walafridus Styabo (in lib. de Rebus Mehrn., Bapt. Hist., p.
524, D. I. Vicecomes, lib. Eccles., cap. 26,)</i> writes, "We
must know that originally believers were very simply baptized
in streams and springs; for our Lord Jesus Christ Himself, in
order to sanctify such washing for us, was baptized of John in
Jordan; even we read elsewhere: 'John was baptizing in Enon
near to Salim, because there was much water there."'</p>

<p>Page 525. from <i>D. hicecomes, lib. 1,
cap. 30;</i> also, <i>cap. 26,</i> Strabo speaks thus
concerning baptism: We must know that in those first times
baptism was administered only to those who, in body as well as
in soul, were washed clean and white, so that they could both
know and understand, what benefit there was to be obtained in
baptism, what was to be confessed and believed, and, finally,
what was necessary to be observed by the regenerated in
Christ."</p>

<p>He then relates of Augustine, that he was instructed in the
faith before he was baptized (of</p>

</div><div id="105"> 

<p>which we shall speak in the proper place); but that
subsequently, for the sake of improvement, as it is called, the
church, that is, the Roman church, practiced infant baptism,
with a view of freeing infants by this means from the
punishment of God for original sin. Then the followers of the
true faith (thus he wrongly calls the Romanists), in order that
the children might not be lost, if they should die without
means of regeneration, that is, baptism, resolved that they
should .be baptized for the remission of sins. Hence
originated, he writes, the custom of having godfathers and
godmothers, who stand for the child at (literally, lift the
child from) baptism, and answer for them all that they
themselves, on account of the weakness of their infancy, are
not able to confess. Thus for Strabo.</p>

<p>N. B.-Concerning these words, D. Vicecomes writes
thus, "Since Walafridus Strabo removes the custom of infant
baptism from the primitive church, he also recognizes no older
origin of the godfather's than which date from a period
subsequent to the time of Augustine." <i>Bacent;t. Hist.,</i>
pp. 525, 526.</p>

<p>Thus, in the first two centuries, and long afterwards,
infant baptism was not known by the Romanists even, according
to the above mentioned testimony of W. Strabo. Shortening this,
we shall conclude with a statement contained in the <i>H.
Doophistorie,</i> at the end of the second century, <i>page</i>
211, <i>cap. 7, de Ratione Gubernationis Eccle</i>sice, "Since
also the administration of the Sacrament belongs to the
government of the church, we see from the history of the time,
that the bishops and teachers did not deem it burdensome to
baptize, not bells and altars, but men whom 'they had
instructed in the principal articles of the Christian religion;
and to them they also administered the holy Supper." We shall
now proceed to the martyrs, who, during this time suffered for
this same faith.</p>
<a name="104"></a>
<h2>AN ACCOUNT OF THOSE WHO SUFFERED IN THE SECOND
   CENTURY: SUMMARY OF THE MARTYRS OF THE SECOND CENTURY</h2> 

<p>[The two Roman, or, properly speaking, Greek Emperors,
Trajan and Marcus Aurelius raised the principal persecutions
against the Christians, in this century. This is amply shown in
the following account, as well as what persons suffered for the
name of Christ in these persecutions.</p>

<p>In the persecutions through Trajan there were slain, after
enduring much suffering, Simon Cleophas, who was a hundred and
twenty years old, Rufus and Zosimus, the Ethiopian baptized by
Philip, Ignatius, Onesimus, Dionysius Areopagita, Publius,
Barsimeus, Barbelius and his sister Barba, Justus and Pastor,
Phocas, Faustina, Jacobita, Felicitas with her seven sons, and
Lucius. Under Marcus Aurelius there suffered, Justinus,
Polycarpus, and twelve of his beloved disciples, who had come
from Philadelphia to Smyrna, and were slain there; Carpus,
Papylus, Agathonica and many women, Germanicus, Vetius,
Attalus, Alexander of Phrygia, Maturus, Sanctus Blandina and a
youth, Photinus, ninety years old, Alcibiades, Epipodius,
Alexander the Greek, Leoxides, Plutarchus, Sagaris, Thraseas.
All these fought unto blood under the blood-stained banner of
Jesus Christ; their deaths may be read at large in the
following account.]</p>

<p>We shall begin the second century with the third general
persecution which was raised against the followers of Jesus
Christ, and shall forthwith proceed to give an account of the
time, place, persons, and circumstances.</p>

<h2>THE THIRD PERSECUTION OF THE CHRISTIANS, COMMENCED UNDER TRAJAN, A. D. 102</h2> 

<p>With the beginning of the second century, A. D. 102, arose
the third heathen persecution against the Christians under
Emperor Trajan, who attained to the reign of the Roman monarchy
in the year 100.</p>

<p>Being instigated by Mamertinus, the governor of Rome, and
Targuinus, the superintendent of the worship of the heathen
deities, he persecuted the Christians in an awful manner, and
put them to a wretched death.</p>

<p>He was called a good emperor, but very superstitious as
regards the heathen worship: .by reason of which he was the
more easily induced to undertake this sorry work. It also was
no small help to this end, that the heathen priests and
idolaters paid great taxes, to extirpate by sufferings and
death, as the enemies of God and of man, those who were opposed
to their gods, especially the Christians.</p>

<p>Meanwhile we shall show what persons suffered under the
bloody reign of Emperor Trajan, for the name of Jesus
Christ.</p>

<h2>SIMON CLEOPHAS, ONE OF THE SEVENTY DISCIPLES OF
CHRIST, CRUCIFIED BY ATTICUS, UNDER TRAJAN, A. D. 109</h2> 

<p>Simon Cleophas was the son of Cleophas and Mary, and a
cousin of our Lord Jesus, because he was the son of the brother
of Joseph, the supposed father of Christ. After the death of
the apostle James he was chosen, by common consent; bishop of
the church at Jerusalem; hence he must be distinguished from
Simon surnamed Zelotes, who was one of the apostles, and was
crucified in Persia. For, the latter was a son of Alpheus, but
the former a son of Cleophas, not one of the twelve, but of the
seventy disciples of Christ, as Eusebius admits, saying, "If any
one should say that this Simon beheld Christ with his own eyes,
and listened to His preaching with his own ears, he would not
be beyond reason and truth in this opinion, not only on account
of the long duration of his life, being, a hundred and twenty
years old, but much</p>

</div><div id="106"> 

<p>more by virtue of the testimony of the holy Gospel, in which
mention is made of Mary, the wife of Cleophas, whose son he
was, according to the testimony of Egesippus, who was the
nearest historian to the time of the apostles." <i>Hist.
Eccles. Euseb. Pamphil., lib. 3, cap. 11.</i></p>

<p>This is the Simon, of whom it is stated that he was an
eyewitness to the stoning of James, the holy apostle of the
Lord. <i>EQiph. supra, in Sym. Alph.</i></p>

<p>He was accused by some wicked men before Atticus, the
governor of Emperor Trajan, of being a Christian, yea a near
relative of Christ, of the generation of David. On this account
he was dreadfully beaten for many days with scourges and sharp
rods, so that everyone who saw him, had to lament and wonder,
the judge himself being astonished, that a man of such a great
age, a hundred and twenty years old, was able so long to endure
such intolerable torturing.</p>

<p>Finally, as he remained steadfast in his confession, he
became conformed in suffering unto his Lord, whom he confessed,
and was sentenced by Atticus to be crucified; which death he
suffered in the tenth year of Emperor Trajan, which corresponds
with the year of Christ 109. Compare the <i>1st Book of A.
Mellinus, printed A. D. 1617, fol.</i> 24, col. 1, 2, with
<i>Hist. Mart. Joh. Gysii,</i> recently printed by 1. <i>Braat,
A.</i> D. <i>1657, fol. 15, col. 1.</i></p>

<h2>RUFUS AND ZOSIMUS, TWO PIOUS CHRISTIANS, BEHEADED
AT PHILIPPI IN MACEDONIA, FOR THE FAITH IN JESUS CHRIST, A. D. 109</h2> 

<p>Rufus and Zosimus were disciples of Christ and His apostles,
and had also been instrumental in founding and building up the
church of God among the Jews and the Gentiles.</p>

<p>Especially conspicuous is Rufus, from the greetings of the
apostle Paul to the church at Rome, in which he includes Rufus,
not merely as a common member of the same, but as a
distinguished, yea chosen person, for he says, "Salute Rufus
chosen in the Lord, and his mother and mine" (Rom.
<i>16:13).</i></p>

<p>This Rufus and the aforementioned Zosimus, both pious and
upright Christians, together with many of their fellow
believers, were put to death for the faith, in the city of
Philippi in Macedonia, Some write that both were beheaded in
the days of Emperor Trajan, A. D. 109. Compare what A. Mellinus
adduces in <i>Het groot Christen Martelcers-bcek, fol.</i> 19,
col. 4, from <i>Polycarpo ad Philippens,</i> with that which J.
Gysius has noted in <i>Hist. Mart., fol. 15, col. 3.</i></p>

<h2>THE ETHIOPIAN OR EUNUCH OF QUEEN CANDACE, WHO WAS BAPTIZED BY PHILIP, PUT TO DEATH FOR THE NAME OF CHRIST, IN THE ISLAND OF CAPROBANO, A. D. 110</h2> 

<p>Immediately after Rufus and Zosimus, A. Mellinus introduces
the Ethiopian or eunuch of Queen Candace in Ethiopia, who was
converted by Philip to the faith in Jesus Christ, and thereupon
baptized, as we read in the Acts of the Apostles.</p>

<p>It is stated of him, from Jerome, that he preached the
Gospel of our Lord in Arabia Felia, and also in a certain
island of the Red Sea, called Caprobano (some call it Ceylon),
where, it is supposed, he suffered death for the testimony of
the truth. See above, <i>Mellin. ex Hieron. Catal. in
Crescente, in 53, cap. Esad.</i></p>

<h2>IGNATIUS, A DISCIPLE OF THE APOSTLE JOHN,
DEVOURED BY WILD BEASTS IN A CIRCUS AT ROME, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF THE SON OF GOD, A. D. 111</h2> 

<p>Ignatius, a disciple of the apostle John, and a successor of
Peter and Evodius, was in the service of the church of Christ
at Antioch in Syria. He was a very God-fearing man, and
faithful and diligent in his ministrations. He was surnamed
Theophorus, that is, <i>The Bearer of God,</i> apparently
because he often bore the name of God and his Saviour in his
mouth, and led a godly life. He was wont to say frequently, "The
life of man is a continual death, unless it be that Christ
liveth in us." Likewise, "The crucified Christ is my only and
entire love." And, "He that allows himself to be called after
any other than Christ, is not God." And again, "As the world
hates the Christians, so God loves them." <i>A. Mellin., fol.
15, col. 1, from. Iqnat. in EQist. ad Row. et alibe.</i></p>

<p>Having learned that the Emperor Trajan, after the victories
which he had achieved against the Dacians, Armenians,
Assyrians, and other eastern nations, gave thanks at Antioch
unto the gods, and offered great sacrifices unto them, as
though these victories had proceeded from them, Ignatius, as we
are informed by Nicephorus, reproved the Emperor for it, and
this openly in the temple.</p>

<p>The Emperor, exceedingly enraged on this account, caused
Ignatius to be apprehended, yet, for fear of an uproar, because
Ignatius was held in great respect in Antioch, he did not have
him punished there but committed him into the hands of ten
soldiers, and sent him bound to Rome, there to have him
punished.</p>

<p>In the meantime his sentence of death was made known to
him-in what manner and where he was to die; namely, that he
should be torn to pieces by wild beasts at Rome.</p>

<p>On his way thither, he wrote several consolatory epistles to
his friends, the faithful in Christ Jesus; and also to
different churches, as to those of Smyrna, Ephesus,
Philadelphia, Trallis, Magnesia, Tarsus, Philippi, and
especially to the church of Christ at Rome; which letter he
sent before his arrival there.</p>

<p>It appears that the thought of being torn to pieces by the
teeth of wild beasts was constantly on his mind during the
journey; yet not as a matter of dread, but of earnest desire.
This he mentions</p>

</div><div id="107"> <br />
 

<p>in his letter to the church at Rome, writing thus"Journeying
from Syria to Rome, by water and by land, by day and by night,
I fight with wild beasts, bound between ten leopards, who, the
more I stroke, and show myself friendly to them, the more cruel
and malignant they become. However, through the cruelties and
torments which they daily inflict upon me, I am more and more
exercised and instructed; nevertheless, I am not justified
thereby. O that I were already with the beasts, which are ready
to devour me I I hope that, ere long, I shall find them such as
I wish them to be, that is, cruel enough to destroy me
speedily. But if they will not fall upon and tear me, I shall
kindly allure them, so that they will not spare me, as they
have already spared several Christians, but will quickly tear
me in pieces, and devour me. Forgive me for speaking thus; I
know what I need. Now only I begin to be a disciple of Christ.
I regard neither things visible nor invisible, at which the
world is amazed. It is sufficient for me if I but become a
partaker of Christ. Let the devil and evil men afflict me with
all manner of pain and torment, with fire, with cross, with
fighting against wild beasts, with scattering of the members
and bones of my body; all this I esteem very little, if I but
enjoy .Christ. Only pray for me, that inward and outward
strength be given me, not only to speak or write this, but also
to perform and endure it, so that I may not only be called a
Christian, but also be found one in truth." <i>Ignat. in Epist.
ad Rom.</i></p>

<p>Having arrived at Rome, he was delivered by the soldiers to
the governor, together with the letters of the Emperor, which
contained his sentence of death. He was kept in prison several
days, until a certain feast-day of the Romans, when the
Governor, according to the order of the Emperor, had him
brought forth into the amphitheatre. First of all they sought
by many torments, to induce him to blaspheme the name of
Christ, and offer sacrifice to the gods. But when Ignatius did
not weaken in his faith, but was only, the longer, the more
strengthened in refusing to offer heathen sacrifices, he was
forthwith condemned by the Roman Senate, immediately to be cast
before the lions.</p>

<p>As Ignatius was led away from the presence of the Senate, to
the innermost enclosure, or pit of the lions, he frequently
repeated the name of Jesus in the conversation which he, while
on the way, carried on with the believers, as well as in his
secret</p>

</div><div id="108"> 

<p>prayer to God. Being asked why he did so, he replied
thus, "My dear Jesus, my Saviour, is so deeply written in my
heart, that I feel confident, that if my heart were to be cut
open and chopped to pieces, the name of Jesus would be found
written on every piece." With this the pious man indicated that
not only his mouth, but the innermost parts of his heart were
filled with the love of Jesus</p>

<p>for out of the abundance of the heart the mouth speaketh.
Thus, also Paul, being filled with the love of Jesus Christ,
has used, in his letters, as much as two hundred times (as has
been counted) the words,"Our Lord Jesus Christ." The
name"Jesus" he employs as much as five hundred times.</p>

<p>When the whole multitude of the people were assembled, to
witness the death of Ignatius (for the report had spread
throughout the whole city, that a bishop had been brought from
Syria, who, according to the sentence of the Emperor, was to
fight against the wild beast), Ignatius was brought forth and
placed in the middle of the amphitheatre. Thereupon Ignatius,
with a bold heart, thus addressed the people which stood
around, "O ye Romans, all you who have come to witness with your
own eyes this combat; know ye, that this punishment has not
been laid upon me on account of any misdeed or crime; for such
I have in no wise committed, but that I may come to God, for
whom I long, and whom to enjoy is my insatiable desire. For, I
am the grain of God. I am ground by the teeth of the beast,
that I may be found a pure bread of Christ, who is to me the
bread of life." These words spake Ignatius, when he stood in
the middle of the amphitheatre, and when he heard the lions
roar; which the brethren of the church who also stood among the
people heard and testified to.</p>

<p>As soon as he had spoken these words, two dreadful, hungry
lions were let out to him from their pits, who instantly tore
and devoured him, leaving almost nothing, or, at least, very
little, even of his bones. Thus fell asleep, happy in the Lord,
this faithful martyr of Jesus Christ, A. D. 111, in the 12th
year of Emperor Trajan. Compare <i>Abr. Mell.</i> 1st <i>book
of the Hist. der hervolg. en Mart.,</i> printed 1619, fol. 25,
col. 1-4, <i>and</i> fol. 26, col. 1, with JoR. Gysii <i>Hist.
Mart., fol.</i> 15, col. 2, 3. Also, <i>W. Baudart. in Apophth.
Christian,</i> printed A. D. 1640. <i>The first book, in the
second Apophthegm, on the name Ignatius,</i> pp. 37, 38, from
different other authors.</p>

<h2>ONESIMUS, A FRIEND OF THE APOSTLE PAUL, BROUGHT FROM ROME TO EPHESUS, AND THERE STONED TO DEATH, A. D. .111</h2> 

<p>Onesimus, a servant of Philemon, by descent a Colossian, had
run away from his master, and had come to Rome, where he was
recognized by the apostle Paul-who was imprisoned there-and
sent back to his master, with recommendatory letters tending to reconciliation, as may be seen in the
epistle of Paul to Philemon, in which Paul calls him his son,
whom he had begotten in his bonds. Philemon 10.</p>

<p>He also carried a certain letter of Paul from the prison at
Rome to the church at Colosse;for in the conclusion of the
epistle to the Colossians we read, "Sent from Rome through Tychicus and Onesimus." Col. 4 after
verse 18.</p>

<p>It appears therefore, that he was a beloved friend and
faithful servant of the apostle Paul, notwithstanding he had
left his external service in the house of Philemon. He also,
after he was sincerely converted, was not permitted to finish
his course without persecution, sufferings, and a violent
death; but had to tread after the example of his Saviour, the
wine press of suffering. According to the testimony of ancient
historians, he was carried away bound from Ephesus to Rome, and
there stoned to death, under Trajan, and the judge Tertullus,
shortly after the death of Ignatius, A. D. 111. See above,
<i>Idem. Ibidem. ex Act. Metaph. Mart., Rom., 16 Febr.</i>
Also, <i>Ado.</i></p>

<h2>DIONYSIUS AREOPAGITA, WHO WAS CONVERTED BY PAUL, MARTYRED FOR CONFESSING JESUS CHRIST, ABOUT THE YEAR 112</h2> 

<p>We read in the Acts of the Apostles, chap. 17, verse 34,
that among those who clave unto the doctrine of Paul, there was
also Dionysius, one of the Athenian council, and a woman named
Damaris.</p>

<p>It is testified of this Dionysius, surnamed the Areopagite,
that he so increased in the Christian religion, that Paul
afterwards appointed him bishop at Athens; yet, that finally,
after having made a most glorious confession of faith, and
suffered many severe torments, he was crowned, as a victorious
hero of Jesus Christ, with the martyr's crown, when he had got
to be a very old man, and had commended his spirit into the
hands of his heavenly Father. He now accomplished what he was
wont to frequently repeat in his life, "The last words of my
Lord Jesus, while on the cross, shall also be my last words in
this temporal life, namely: 'Father, into thy hands I commend
my spirit."' Thereupon he was put to death, and thus fell
asleep happy in the Lord. Compare <i>A. Mell., 1st book of the
Histor. der vervolg. en Mart.,</i> printed A. <i>D. 1619., fol.
26, cot. 2, from Adone in Martyrol. ex Arist. lib. de Relig.
Christ and Suida in Dion. Areopag. and Seger., in Chron. 10.
Strac. in Pass, Part. S. Homil. 2,</i> with W. <i>Baudart, in
Apophthegm Christian, 1st book 7th edition, A. D. 1640, cent;.
17, on the name Dionysius Areopagita.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-Touching the manner of the death, or martyrdom, of
Dionysius the Areopagite, we find nothing stated in ancient,
trustworthy writers; hence we have said nothing about it,
though some have written, that he was beheaded at Paris; for
which statement we let them be responsible, since their
accounts of this event differ in regard to the</p>

</div><div id="109"> 

<p>manner in which, as well as the time when, it is said to
have occurred. <i>See in the above-mentioned Apophthegm.
Baudartii.</i></p>

<h2>PUBLIUS, BARSIMAEUS, BARBELIUS, AND HIS
SISTER BARBA, SLAIN FOR THE NAME OF JESUS CHRIST ABOUT THE YEAR 112</h2> 

<p>It is also stated that Publius, bishop of the church at
Athens, a good and pious man, was slain for the name of Christ;
likewise, Barsimaeus, bishop of the church at Edessa, and with
him, Barbelius and his sister Barba, who had been baptized by
him; all -of whom, steadfastly contending for the truth,
obtained the martyrs' crown. Compare <i>Joh. Gysii Hist. Mart.,
fol. 15,</i> col. 3, with the <i>Introduction to the Martyrs
Mirror o f the Defenseless Christians,</i> printed A. D. 1631,
fol. 93, col. 1.</p>

<h2>JUSTUS AND PASTOR, SLAIN FOR THE FAITH AT COMPLUTUM, ABOUT THE YEAR 116</h2> 

<p>That Justus and Pastor were deprived of life at Complutum, a
city in Spain, for the same reason for which the aforementioned
martyrs were slain, namely, for the testimony of Jesus, the Son
of God, his we find stated in different ancient writers. <i>See
above.</i></p>

<h2>PHOCAS, BISHOP OF PONTUS, PUT TO DEATH IN A LIME-KILN, AND IN BOILING WATER, FOR THE NAME OF JESUS CHRIST, AT SINOPE, ABOUT THE YEAR 118</h2> 

<p>Phocas, a son of Pamphilius, the first bishop of the church
in Pontus in the city of Sinope, on being brought, in the time
of Trajan, before Africanus, the Governor of Pontus, who urged
him to sacrifice upon the alter of Neptune, steadfastly refused
to do this; on account of which he was sentenced by the
Governor to die for the name of Christ; which death he suffered
after many pains and torments, and was thus numbered with his
slain fellow brethren. Regarding the death of this man, see
<i>A. Mell., 1st book of the Hist. der vervolg. in Mart., fol.
27, col. 1, ex Adone, in Comment. At.</i> 6. <i>Aster. Orat. de
Phoca.</i> Also, concerning the time of his death, for the year
118, see <i>Joh. Gysii Hist. Mart., fol. 15,</i> col. 4.</p>

<p>Touching the manner of his death, P. J. Twisck gives the
following account, "Phocas, in Pontus,</p>

</div><div id="110"> 

<p>refusing to sacrifice to the gods, was thrust, according to
the command of Emperor Trajan, and for the name of Christ, into
a lime-kiln full of glowing coals, then cast into boiling water
.and thus killed. <i>P. J. Twisck, Chron., 2d book, for the
year 118,; p. 37, cot. 2. from, Adon. Vinnens., lib. 6, fol.
166, Tine fol. 519.</i></p>

<h2>FAUSTINA AND JACOBITA PUT TO DEATH, FOR THE FAITH, AT BRESCIA; AND ELENTHERUS WITH HIS MOTHER ANTHIA, IN SICILY, A. D. <i>120</i></h2> 

<p>About this time several persons were put to death for the
name of Christ; as Faustina and Jacobita, at Brescia in Italy;
Elentherus with his mother Anthia, and others, at Messina in
Sicily, etc.; all of whom, contending steadfastly, even unto
death, departed with joyful hope. As regards the persecutions
of this time, compare <i>Joh. Gysii Hist. Mart., fol. 115, cot.
4,</i> with <i>A. Mellinus, P. J. Twisck,</i> and others.</p>

<h2>SEVERE PERSECUTIONS OF THE BELIEVERS ABOUT THE YEAR <i>130</i></h2> 

<p>About this time, writes P. J. Twisck, the instruments of the
devil could not invent punishments severe enough, but what they
considered the Christians worthy of. For they were watched in
their houses as well as without; men cried out against them in
all public places; they were scourged, stoned, and dragged
about; their goods were plundered; they were apprehended;
red-hot iron, plates were applied to their bare bodies; they
were placed in a certain instrument made to torture
malefactors; they were put into the deepest and darkest places
of the prisons, where they were slain, yea, they were afflicted
with excruciating torments. <i>P. J. Twisck, Chron., 2d book,
for the year 130, page 39, cot. 2, and page 40, cot. 1, from
Jan CresQin in den staet der Kerken.</i></p><br />

<h2>GETULICUS, SYMPHOROSA WITH HER SONS, CERIALUS AND AMANTIUS, PUT TO DEATH FOR THE FAITH, AT FRIVOLI; AND SAPPHIRA AND SABINA AT ROME, A. D. <i>136</i></h2> 

<p>Getulicus, a teacher at Frivoli in Italy, Symphorosa with
her sons, and Cerialus and Amantius, were put to death in that
city for the faith. It is also stated that Sapphira, a maiden
from Antioch, and Sabina, the widow of Valentinus, had to lay
down their lives, at Rome, for the same reason. <i>Joh. Gysii
Hist. Mart., fol. 15, cot. 4.</i></p>

<h2>PTOLOMEUS, A GODFEARING MAN, PUT TO DEATH AT ALEXANDRIA, IN EGYPT, FOR THE FAITH IN JESUS CHRIST, ABOUT THE YEAR <i>144</i></h2> 

<p>It is stated that Ptolomeus was a pious and Godfearing man,
who had converted his wife from the blindness of heathendom to
the faith. He was apprehended for the truth of Christ. Asked,
whether he was a Christian, he, as a lover of the truth, im
mediately confessed that he was. After this confession, he was
cast into prison, in which he suffered so long as to become
completely emaciated. Finally he was delivered to the judge
Urbicius, who shortly afterwards had him put to death; and thus
Ptolomeus became a faithful martyr of Jesus Christ. Compare
<i>Joh. Gysii Hist. Mart.,</i> printed at <i>Dort, 1657, fol.
15, cot. 3,</i> with <i>-Abr. Melt., 1st book of the Hist. der
vervolg. Mart.,</i> also, printed at <i>Dort, A. D. 1619, fol.
32, cot. 2, from Just. Philos. Apol. prima Christian Euseb.,
lib. 4, cap. 17.</i></p>

<h2>LUCIUS, A PIOUS CHRISTIAN, ALSO PUT TO DEATH AT ALEXANDRIA, ACCORDING TO THE PRECEDING SENTENCE, TOGETHER WITH ANOTHER, WHO MADE THE SAME PROFESSION, ABOUT THE YEAR 144</h2> 

<p>In <i>Historia Ecclesia Eusebii Pamphilii Ccpsariensis,</i>
mention is made of a certain Lucius, who was greatly
dissatisfied with the sentence and execution of the
aforementioned pious man Ptolomeus, and, therefore demanded a
reason for it from the judge, at the same time confessing
himself a Christian; which cost him his life, even as it did
the man for whom he interceded.</p>

<p>The words in the book mentioned above are as follows, "When
Lucius, who was also a Christian, perceived that so
presumptuous a sentence was pronounced against Ptolomeus, he
said to Urbicius (the judge): 'Pray, tell me, for what reason
do you sentence this man so hastily, and cause him to be led to
execution, merely on account of one word, because he confesses
himself to be a Christian? If there were another, who would
confess all manner of sin, such as murder, adultery, or any
other crime, would you also act so hastily, and sentence him to
death immediately? This is not proper, O Urbicius! it does not
become a good emperor, a wise bachelor, the son of the emperor,
or the senators to act thus.' Then said Urbicius to Lucius</p>

<p>'It appears to me that thou also art a Christian.' When
Lucius replied: 'It is true, I am one.' Then Urbicius commanded
that he should be led forth to death. Thereupon Lucius said: 'I
thank thee, for releasing me from these wicked lords, and
sending me to the kind and best of fathers, the king of all
things, namely, our God.' Another who also boldly confessed
that he was a Christian, was put to death by virtue of the same
sentence." Thus far, <i>Eusebius in the 4th book of his Church
History, in the 17th chapter, Dort edition, A.D. 1588, fol. 72,
cot.</i> 1, compared with A. <i>Mellinus</i> and <i>Joh.
Gysius,</i> in the passages quoted concerning Ptolomeus.</p>

<h2>FELICITAS WITH HER SEVEN SONS, JANUARIUS, FELIX, PHILIPPUS, SYLVANUS, ALEXANDER, VITALIS, AND MARTIALIS, PUT TO DEATH FOR THE FAITH, AT ROME, A. D. 164</h2> 

<p>Felicitas was a Christian widow at Rome, and had seven sons,
whose names were Januarius, Fe-</p>

</div><div id="111"> 

<p>lix, Philippus, Sylvanus, Alexander, Vitalis, and Martialis.
These lived together with their mother in one house, as an
entire Christian church. Of the mother it is stated, that by
her Christian communion, (conversation) which she had with the
Roman women, she converted many to Christ. The sons, on their
part, also acquitted themselves well by winning many men to
Christ.</p>

<p>Now, when the heathen priests complained of this to
Antonius, the Emperor-who had resumed the persecution which had
begun with Trajan, but had subsided-saying, that there were not
only men, but also women, who blasphemed the gods, despised
their images, trampled under foot the Emperor's worship of the
gods, yea, turned away many from the old religion of the
Romans; that this was principally done by a certain widow,
named Felicitas, and her seven sons, and that, therefore, in
order to prevent this, they must be compelled to give up
Christ, and sacrifice to the gods, or, in case they should
refuse to do so, be put to death, the Emperor, prompted or
instigated hereby, gave . to Publius, the provost, or chief
magistrate of Rome, full authority over them.</p>

<p>Publius, willing to spare Felicitas, as being a highly
respectable woman, first secretly summoned her and her sons
into his own house, where he entreated them with fair words and
promises, but afterwards threatened to punish them with severe
tortures, unless they would forsake the Christian religion, and
readopt the old Roman worship of the gods. Felicitas,
remembering the words of Christ,"Whosoever shall confess me
before men, him will I confess also before my Father which is
in heaven," did not seek to evade the issue by using
dissimulating or indirect words, but answered briefly thus, "I
am neither moved by thy flatteries and entreaties, nor am I
intimidated by thy threats; for I experience in my heart the
working of the Holy Ghost, which gives me a living power, and
prepares me for the conflict of suffering, to endure all that
thou mayest lay upon me, for the confession of my faith."</p>

<p>When Publius could not move the mother from her steadfast
purpose, he said to her, "Very well; if it seems pleasant to
thee , to die, die alone, but have pity and a mother's
compassion for thy sons, and command them, to ransom their own
lives at least, by sacrificing to the gods."</p>

<p>Thereupon Felicitas said to the judge, "Thy compassion is
pure wickedness, and thy admonition is nothing but cruelty,
for, if my sons should sacrifice to the gods, they would not
ransom 'their lives, but sell them to the hellish fiend, whose
slaves, yea, whose serfs in soul and body, they would become,
and be reserved by him, in chains of darkness, for everlasting
fire."</p>

<p>Then, turning away from the judge, to her sons, she
said, "Remain steadfast in the faith, and in the confession of
Christ; for Christ and His saints are waiting for you. Behold,
heaven is open before you; therefore fight valiantly for your
souls, and show, that you are faithful in the love of Christ,
wherewith He loves you, and you Him."</p>

<p>This filled the judge with rage against her, and he
commanded them to smite her on the cheek, while he at the same
time upbraided her vehemently, saying, "How darest thou thus
impudently exhort thy sons in my presence, and make them
obstinate to disobey the commands of the Emperor; whereas it
would be far more proper for thee to incite them to obedience
toward him?"</p>

<p>Felicitas, notwithstanding that death had been threatened
her, answered with more than manly courage, saying, "If thou, O
judge, didst know our Saviour Jesus Christ, and the power of
His Godhead and majesty, thou wouldst undoubtedly desist from
persecuting the Christians, and wouldst not seek to draw us
away from the Christian religion by blaspheming His holy name;
for whoever curses (or blasphemes) Christ and His faithful
ones, curses (or blasphemes) God Himself, who, by faith, dwells
in their hearts."</p>

<p>Thereupon, though they struck her in the face with their
fists, in order to silence her, she did not cease to admonish
her sons to remain steadfast, and to fear neither tortures nor
rack, nor even death itself, but to die willingly for the name
of Christ.</p>

<p>Therefore, Publius the judge took each of her sons
separately, and talked first to one and then to the other,
hoping by this last resort to draw away from the faith, by
promises as well as by threats, some of them at least, if not
all. But as he could not prevail upon them, he sent a message
to the Emperor, stating that they all remained obstinate, and
that he could in no wise induce them to sacrifice to the gods.
Thereupon the Emperor sentenced the mother together with her
seven sons, that they should be delivered into the hands of
different executioners, and be tortured and put to death in
various ways; yet, that the mother was first to see all her
sons die, before she herself should be put to death.</p>

<p>In accordance with this sentence, they first scourged
Januarius, the first-born, to death, in the presence of his
mother. The scourges were made of cords or ropes, to the ends
of which balls of lead were attached. Those who had to undergo
this mode of torture were scourged with them on their necks,
backs, sides, and other tender parts of their bodies, either to
torture them, or in order to martyr them to death as was the
case in this instance. Felix and Philippus, the two brothers
next (in age), were beaten to death with rods. Sylvanus, also
called Syllanus, was cast down from a height. Alexander,
Vitalis, and Martialis were beheaded. Last of all, the mother
was beheaded or put to death with the sword. This took place
under Emperor Antonius Pius. <i>A. Mell. 1st book of the Hist.,
fol. 33,</i> col. 4 and fol<i>. 34, col. 1-3, ex Prudent. in
hincentio.</i> Also, <i>Acto. Adon. Mart., 23 Novemb. Greg. P.
in Natali. S. Felic. Homil. 3, in Eu. Bet. Chrysol. Serm. 134.
Arta apud Mombrit.</i></p>

</div><div id="112"> 

<p><i>tom 1. Beda Usuard. 23 Nov. Heur. Er$ord. Chron., Mart.
Rom.</i> Touching the time when this took place, see P. J.
<i>Twisck, Chron. 2d book, for the year 164, page 45, col. 1,
front hincentio, in Cal., fol. 35.</i></p>

 
<h1>OF THE FOURTH PERSECUTION OF THE CHRISTIANS, UNDER MARCUS AURELIUS AND LUCIUS VERUS, WHICH WAS COMMENCED ABOUT THE YEAR 166</h1>

<p><i>P. J. Twisck,</i> in his <i>Chronicle,</i> gives as the
beginning of the fourth persecution, the year A. D. <i>162;</i>
the writers of the <i>Introduction to the Martyrs' Mirror of
the Defenseless Christian,</i> fix the beginning in the year
<i>164 (page 37, col. 2); J</i>. Gysius, in <i>Hist. Mart.,
fol. 16, col. 2,</i> places it in the year <i>168,</i> and A.
<i>Mellinus</i> makes no mention at all as to the exact time of
that persecution. However, all these writers abound with
accounts of the inhuman tortures, which the faithful martyrs
had to suffer at that time.*</p>

<p>We, in order to pursue a middle course between the
abovementioned writers, have noted the year <i>166</i> as the
beginning of said persecution. However, there is but little
difference between the above writers; for it is probable, that
the decrees for the persecution of the Christians were first
issued about the year 162; that about the year <i>164</i> they
were carried into effect; and that about the year <i>168</i>
they exhibited their full force, insomuch that the persecution
was then at the height of its fierceness. However, we shall
proceed to see, how atrociously the pious witnesses of Jesus
Christ were then treated.</p>

<h2>HOW ATROCIOUSLY THE SINCERE CHRISTIANS WERE TREATED DURING THIS PERSECUTION</h2> 

<p>Everywhere, in all the cities, writes P. J. Twisck, the
imperial edicts and decrees against the Christians were posted
up; by reason of which the magistrates and officers proceeded
very cruelly against them, persecuting them even unto death,
with great atrocity and fury. For, no mode of torture,
punishment, or death, however great, severe, and unmerciful,
could be devised, produced, or planned, by these wicked men,
these tyrants, and instruments of the devil, but what it was
thought, that the Christians, as accursed, as enemies of the
Kingdom, and as the cause of all misfortune, deserved a
thousand times more. To be publicly mocked, eternally
imprisoned, exiled, scourged, stoned, strangled, hanged,
beheaded, and burned, was deemed far too little.</p>

<p>They began, at this time, to ply the poor people with red
hot plates until they were dead; to tear the flesh from their
bones with red hot tongues; to place them upon iron stools over
a slow fire; to</p>

<br /><cite>* Although P. J. Twisck has placed the fourth
persecution, together with the beginning of the reign of 114.
Aurelius, in the year 162, he, nevertheless, gives to
understand in the sequel of his account, that this persecution
reached its climax in the year 168. Compare this with the time
which the writers of the aforementioned Introduction, and 'Joh.
Gysius" have recorded. fry them in iron frying pans; to roast
them on gridirons at a slow fire; to cast them, enveloped in
close netting, before wild bulls, to serve as sport for them,
and be tossed into the air by their horns.</cite> 

<p>All this was accompanied with still another cruelty. The
bodies of the slain were thrown before the dogs, and guards
placed beside them, to prevent the Christians from taking away
and burying these bodies. In short, the misery was so great,
that at Lyons alone Bishop Irenus with nineteen thousand of his
sheep were cruelly butchered. Thus far P. J. <i>Twisck, in his
Chronicle, 2d book, for the year 162, page 43, col. 2,</i> from
<i>Chron. Mich. Sac. fol. 103. Chron. Sebast. Fra. Also, T yd.
Thresor P. Mernla.</i></p>

<h2>JUSTINUS, FIRST SCOURGED, AND THEN BEHEADED, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, A. D.</h2> 

<p><i>168</i></p>

<p>Justinus was called a son of Priscus Bacchus, and was born
of Greek parents, at Neapolis in Palestine.</p>

<p>In its proper place we have spoken of the views of Justinus
concerning baptism on faith, and have shown that he was sound
and correct in them. Now, however, it is proper for us to speak
of his spiritual birth, of his heavenly fatherland, and how
conclusively he showed that he was a child of God, and a
citizen of the heavenly city, filled with all good things;
which appeared not only in the beginning and progress of his
faith, but especially in the end, when he testified to its
power with his death, and sealed it with his blood.</p>

<p>In the daps of his youth he was instructed in the Platonic
philosophy, in which he acquitted himself so meritoriously,
that he received the name <i>Philosopher,</i> yea, he had been
led to believe, that his learning would soon enable him to see
God, which was the ultimate object of the Platonic philosophy.
But it happened one day, as he was going toward the sea, in
order to meditate in solitude upon what he had learned, that
(as he himself has confessed) there followed him a very grave
and gentle old man, who, having entered in a discourse with
him, respecting the Platonic philosophy, taught him, in what
true philosophy and happiness consisted, namely in the saving
knowledge of the only, eternal, and alone immortal God.</p>

<p>Now, when Justinus inquired for the teachers from whom he
might learn this divine philosophy, the old man referred him to
the writings of the prophets, who did not write according to
the argumentation of human reason, but, as certain and
infallible witnesses, left behind what they had seen and heard
of the words of truth, and the wonderful signs and works of God
among His people; and that all their prophecies concerning the
promised Messiah and Son of God, were fulfilled in the advent
of Jesus Christ, who was born in the reign of Emperor Augustus.
He therefore admonished him, to pray to God, that He would
enlighten his</p>

</div><div id="113"> 

<p>heart to this saving doctrine, through Jesus Christ, without
whom it would not be possible for him to attain to this saving
knowledge., "This and many more such discourses [writes Justinus] this
old man had with me, showing me also, how I should further
increase, and how I might obtain the things necessary to
salvation. Then he went away, and I saw him no more.
Immediately a burning desire was kindled in my heart, and a
love for the Scriptures of the prophets and those men who had
been dear friends of Christ, namely the apostles. Then only I
became a true philosopher."</p>

<p>As to how and by whom, beside the instruction of the
.aforesaid old man, he was first instructed and baptized, or
from what cause he left his native land, and came from Syria,
Palestine, or Samaria, to Rome, of this we find no account.</p>

<p>He afterwards had a disputation with Tryphon, a Jew. Of this
he himself has written an account, in which may be seen his
correct views in regard to different matters of faith,
especially to baptism. Of this we have spoken in another
place.</p>

<p>But finally, having entered into a controversy with
Crescens, a Cynic philosopher, and having vanquished and
confounded him, by the power of divine arguments, his uncertain
life began to draw to a close, and his certain death to
approach. For, by reason of this, this Cynic (that is, canine)
philosopher, conceived such a deadly hatred for Justinus, that
he swore to avenge it with his death; and from that time on did
not cease to lay snares for him, and accuse him as a Christian,
until he had quenched his thirst for blood with the blood of
Justinus. This, Tatianus, the disciple of Justinus, gives to
understand in his oration against the Greeks, in language not
at all obscure, namely, that the above mentioned Crescens did
not only seek the life of Justinus, but also that of himself.
Moreover, Photius states that he tasted a joyful and worthy
death, by the hands of Crescens Cynicus, the person whom we
have just mentioned.</p>

<p>Touching the manner of his death: When Justinus had been
apprehended, on the accusation of Crescens, and boldly refused
to abandon his faith, or sacrifice to the gods, he was
sentenced to death by Rusticus, the President, and, after
having been scourged, he was beheaded with the ax, about A. D.
<i>168,</i> in the time of the reign of the Emperors Marcus
Aurelius and Lucius Virus, and of the President Rusticus, as is
annotated from Epiphanius. Cor, pare <i>Abr. Mell. 1st book of
the Hist. der, fol. 37, c.</i> 1. <i>1-4,</i> and <i>fol. 38,
col. 1-4,</i> from <i>Just. Apol. 2, pro. Christi.,</i>
concerning his descent and name; Dialog. cum <i>Tryphone Jod.
Photius in Biblioth, and Jos. Scal. animad. Chron. Euseb.,</i>
concerning his life and conversion; <i>Iren., lib. 1, in
Bibliotheca de Vita Justini Chron. Eus. A. D. 154,</i> touching
his end and death; <i>Epiph. Hares. 26</i> and <i>46</i>
touching the t' ne when this occurred. Also <i>J. Gysii in
Hist. M rt., fol. 16, col. 3, 4. Also, P. J. Twisck, Chron. 2d
book, for the year 154,</i> <i>page 42, col. 2,</i> from
<i>Johan. Barl., fol. 7. Grond. bew, letter A.</i></p>

<h2>POLYCARP, A DISCIPLE OF THE APOSTLE JOHN, AND BISHOP OF THE CHURCH AT SMYRNA, PUT TO DEATH WITH FIRE AND SWORD, FOR HIS FAITH IN THE SON OF GOD, A. D. <i>168</i></h2> 

<p>We read in the Revelation of John, that the Lord commanded
His servant John, that he should write a few things to the
angel (that is, the bishop or teacher) of the church at Smyrna,
for the admonition of the teacher as well as for the service of
the church, saying, "Unto the angel of the church in Smyrna
write: These things saith the first and the last, which was
dead, and is alive; I know thy works, and tribulation, and
poverty</p>

<p>. Fear none of those things which thou shalt suffer: behold,
the devil shall cast some of you into prison, that ye may be
tried; and ye shall have tribulation ten days: be thou faithful
unto death and I will give thee a crown of life" (Rev.
<i>2:8-10).</i> These words of the Lord Jesus indicate that the
believers at Smyrna, and their teacher, were in tribulation and
poverty, and that still more suffering was appoaching them;
whereupon he exhorted them to constancy, and promised to give
them the crown of life.</p>

<p>As regards the teacher of this church, most of the ancient
writers call him Polycarp, and say, that he was a disciple of
the apostle John, inasmuch as he had heard John preach the Word
of God, and had associated with those who had known the Lord
Jesus Christ personally, and had had intercourse with him; and
that John had appointed him bishop or overseer of the church at
Smyrna.</p>

<p>Touching the sufferings which the Lord said would befall him
and the church of which he was teacher, this began some time
afterwards; in such manner that this good shepherd preceded,
and many of the sheep of his flock faithfully followed him.
However, we intend to speak here only of the shepherd,
Polycarp.</p>

<p>It is stated, that three days before he was apprehended and
sentenced to death, he was suddenly overcome by sleep, in the
midst of his prayer, and while dreaming, had a vision, in which
he saw the pillow on which he lay with his head, suddenly
taking fire and was consumed. Instantly awakened thereby, he
concluded that he was to be burnt for the name of Christ.</p>

<p>When those who sought to apprehend him, had approached very
close, his friends endeavored to conceal him, and, therefore,
brought him to another country-seat, where he was nevertheless
shortly afterwards discovered by his persecutors. For they had
seized two lads, whom they, by scourging them, compelled to say
where Polycarp was; and although, from the chamber in which he
was, he might easily have made his escape into another house
near by, he would not do it, but said"The will of the Lord be
done." He therefore de-</p>

</div><div id="114"> 

<p>scended the stairs, to meet his persecutors, whom he
received so kindly, that those who had not known him before,
regretfully said,"What need had we to make so great haste, to
apprehend such an old man."</p>

<p>Polycarp immediately had a table spread for his captors,
.and affectionately urged them to eat; begging of them to allow
him an hour's time in which to pray undisturbedly in quiet,
while they were eat-</p>

<p>ing; which they granted him. When he had finished his
prayer, and the hour was up, in which he had reflected upon his
life, and commended the church of which he was teacher, unto
God and his Saviour, the bailiffs placed him upon an ass, and
led him to the city, on the Sabbath of the great feast.</p>

<p>Nicetes and his son Herod, called the prince of peace, rode
out to meet him, took him from the ass, and made him sit with
them in their carriage, seeking in this manner to induce him to
apostatize from Christ, saying, "What matters it for you to say,
Lord Emperor, and to offer sacrifice or incense before him, to
save your life." At first, Polycarp made no reply at all, but
when they persisted in asking him, and demanded an answer, he
finally said, "I shall never do what you request and counsel me
to do." When they saw that he was immovable in his faith, they
commenced to revile him, and, at the same time, thrust him out
of the carriage, so that in falling he severely injured his
leg. He never showed, however, that he had been inured by the
fall, but, as soon as he had risen, willingly surrendered
himself again into the hands of the bailiffs, to be led further
to the place of execution, walking as rapidly as though nothing
hindered him.</p>

<p>As soon as Polycarp had entered the circus or amphitheatre,
where he was to be executed, a voice came to him from heaven,
saying,"Be strong, O Polycarp! and valiant in thy confession,
and in the suffering which awaits thee." No person saw the one
from whom this voice proceeded, but many of the Christians that
stood around heard it; however, on account of the great
commotion, the greater part of the people could not hear it. It
nevertheless tended to strengthen Polycarp and those who had
heard it.</p>

<p>The Stadtholder admonished him to have .compassion for his
great age, and, by swearing by the Emperor's fortune, to deny
Christ. Thereupon Polycarp gave the following candid reply,"I
have now served my Lord Christ Jesus eighty-six years, and He
has never done me any harm. How can I deny my King, who hath
hitherto preserved me from all evil, and so faithfully redeemed
me?"</p>

<p>Thereupon the Stadtholder threatened to have him torn by
wild beasts, if he would not desist from his purpose, saying, "I
have the beasts ready, before whom I shall cast thee, unless
thou become converted betimes." Polycarp answered
unterrified, "Let them come, for my purpose is un changeable. We
cannot be converted or perverted from good to evil by
affliction; but it would be better, if they (the evildoers) who
persist in their wickedness would become converted to that
which is good." The Stadtholder replied, "If thou art not yet
sorry, and despisest the wild beasts, I shall have thee burned
with fire." Once more Polycarp answered, saying, "Thou
threatenest me with a fire, which will perhaps burn for an
hour, and then soon go out; but thou knowest -not the fire of
the future judgment of God, which is prepared and reserved for
the everlasting punishment and torment of the ungodly. But why
delayest thou? Bring on the beasts, or the fire, or whatever
thou mayest choose: thou shalt not, by either of them, move me
to deny Christ, my Lord and Saviour."</p>

<p>Finally, when the people demanded his death, he was
delivered by the Stadtholder to be burned. Instantly there was
brought together a great heap of wood, fagots, and shavings.
When Polycarp saw this, he undressed himself, and took off his
shoes, in order to be laid on the wood without any clothes.
This being done, the executioners were about to lay their hands
on him, to nail him on the wood; but he said, "Let it be so; He
that hath given me strength to endure the pain of the fire,
will also strengthen me to remain still in the fire, though you
nail me not to the firewood. They, accordingly, did not fasten
him with nails, but simply with a rope, tied his hands behind
his back. Thus, prepared for a burnt offering, and placed upon
the wood like a sacrificial lamb, he prayed to God, saying,"O
Father of Thy beloved and blessed Son, our Lord Jesus Christ,
through whom we have received the saving knowledge of Thy holy
name; God of angels and powers, and of all creatures, but
especially of all the righteous who live in Thy sight, I thank
Thee that Thou didst call me to this day and hour, and hast
counted me worthy; that I may have my part and place among the
number of the holy martyrs, and in the cup of the suffering of
Christ, so I suffer with Him, and thus partake of His pains. I
pray Thee, O Lord, that Thou wouldst this day receive me, as a
fat offer ing among the number of Thy holy martyrs, ever as
Thou alone, O God of truth, who canst not lie didst prepare me
thereto, and didst make it known unto me, yea, hast now
ultimately fulfilled it Therefore I thank and praise Thee,
above other men, and honour Thy holy name, through Jesus
Christ, Thy well-beloved Son, the eternal Higl Priest, unto
whom, with Thee and the Holy Ghost be the glory, now and
forever. Amen."</p>

<p>As soon as he had uttered the last word of hi: prayer (the
word"Amen"), the executioners ig nited the wood upon which he
was placed; an( when the flames circled high above the body o
Polycarp, it was found, to the astonishment o everyone that the
fire injured him but little, or no at all. The executioner was
therefore commander to pierce him with a sword, which was
instantly</p>

</div><div id="115"> 

<p>done, so that the blood, either through the heat of the
fire, or from some other reason, issued so copiously from the
wound that the fire was almost extinguished thereby; and thus
this faithful witness of Jesus Christ, having died both by fire
and the sword, entered into the rest of the saints, about A. D.
168. Compare <i>Euseb.,</i> 4th <i>book,</i> 15 <i>chap.,</i>
printed A. D. 1588, <i>page</i> 66-70 with <i>Aby. Mell.,</i>
1st <i>book of the Hist., fol.</i> 40, 41, col. 1-4, from
<i>Iren., lib. 3, cap. 3. Hares. Hieron. Catal. in Polycarp,
Euseb., lib.</i> 4, cap. <i>13,</i> and <i>lib.</i> 5, cap. 19.
Also, loh. Gysii <i>Hist. Mart. for the year</i> 168,
<i>fol.</i> 17, col. <i>2.</i> Also, P. I. <i>Twisck, Chron. 2d
book, A. D.</i> 168, <i>page</i> 45, col. <i>2.</i></p>

<h2>TWELVE PIOUS CHRISTIANS, WHO HAD COME FROM PHILADELPHIA TO SMYRNA, PUT TO DEATH' ON THE SAME DAY, WITH .POLYCARP, THE AFOREMENTIONED MARTYR, A. D. 168</h2> 

<p>In the letter which the Holy Ghost directed John to write to
the angel of the church at Smyrna, which we mentioned'above, it
is indicated, that not only the teacher, who is called an
angel, namely Polycarp, but also some of the church, would have
to suffer for the name of Jesus Christ. We read, "Behold, the
devil shall cast some of you into prison, that ye may be tried"
(Rev. <i>2,:10).</i> This was also fulfilled in truth. For it
is stated, that not only Polycarp, the leader of the church at
Smyrna, but with him also twelve members of the church, who had
come from Philadelphia, were put to death for the same reason
and in the same manner.</p>

<p>The words of Eusebius concerning these martyrs from
Philadelphia, taken from the Smyrna letter, are, according to
A. Mellinus, as follows, "These ,are the particulars of the
martyrdom of Polycarp, who had come from Philadelphia to
Smyrna, together with twelve others, who willingly suffered
death in the same manner with him; whose names are not
mentioned, that of Polycarp alone being given, because, not
only among the Christians, but even among the Jews and the
heathen, he was famous far and wide for his extraordinary
godliness. These testimonies are finished and sealed with the
precious blood of the Christians. At the time of the fourth
persecution; under the Emperors Marcus Aurelius and Lucius
Virus, about in the seventeenth year of their reign, coinciding
with the 168th year of our Saviour."</p>

<p>This is what we have found concerning these twelve pious
witnesses of Jesus. Christ, who, as the twelve celestial signs;
shone forth in faith as well as in virtue, but especially in
steadfastness; wherefore the Lord, who is a rewarder unto His
faithful servants, will hereafter crown and reward them' with
the unfading crown of glory. See, concerning this, <i>Abr.
Mell. 1st book of the Hist., fol.</i> 42, col. 2, from
<i>Euseb., lib. 4.</i></p>

<h2>CARPUS. PAPYLUS, AGATHONICA AND MANY OTHER WOMEN, PUT TO DEATH AT PERGAMOS, IN ASIA MINOR, FOR THE CONFESSION OF THE TRUE FAITH, ABOUT THE YEAR 168</h2> 

<p>It is recorded that about the same time that the
aforementioned Christians were martyred, several other pious
persons suffered death for the name of Jesus Christ, and the
confession of the Son of God; among whom are mentioned by name,
three very eminent persons, namely, Carpus, Papylus, and a
woman called Agathonica, together with many other women; who
were all crowned with the crown of the holy martyrs at
Pergamos, in Asia Minor, for the saving confession of the true
faith. <i>Euseb.,</i> 4th <i>book, cap. 15, fol.</i> 70, col.
2. A. <i>Mell., 1st book, fol.</i> 42, col. 1, <i>2.</i></p>

<h2>GERMANICUS, AN EMINENTLY PIOUS MAN, DEVOURED BY
THE BEASTS, AT SMYRNA IN ASIA MINOR, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, A. D. 170</h2> 

<p>In P. <i>T. Twisck's Chronicle is</i> found the following
account for the year A. D. 170: Germanicus, with other dear
friends of God, had to suffer severe persecution and torture
for the name of Christ, and was finally, cast before the wild
beasts, and thus willingly ended his life." <i>2d book, van den
undergang, page</i> 46, col. 1, from <i>Euseb., lib.</i> 4.</p>

<p>Concerning the cause of his conversion, suffering and death,
other authors write thus, "When the bystanders (while the
Christians were being miserably put to death) beheld with their
eyes, that the flesh of the martyrs of Christ, by many
scourgings and stripes, was lacerated and torn loose even to
the inmost veins and deepest sinews, so that their entrails and
the most secret parts could be seen moving; and that the
torturers then strewed potsherds, sea-shells, and even
caltrops on the ground, over which they rolled, dragged; and on
which they pressed the Christians thus. tormented, with their
naked bodies; and that at last, when they, on account of the
previous torments, could scarcely live or draw breath any
longer, they cast them before the wild beasts, to be devoured
by them; I 'say, when the spectators of.these tragedies saw,
how inhumanly these people were treated, and, on the other
hand, how patiently the suffering Christians endured the
tortures, they were greatly amazed, yea terrified., "Among these was the aforementioned Germanicus, who, being
strengthened through the grace of God," so powerfully overcame
the natural and innate weakness of the mind, which so much
dreads the bodily death, that, on account of his singular
steadfastness, he could well be considered one of the most
eminent martyrs. For, when the Stadtholder sought to persuade
him, and to move him, and to move him by soft words, to spare
the bloom of his youth, and to have mercy upon himself, he
despised his counsel, and, for the sake of the Lord Jesus
Christ did not count his youthful life precious."</p>

</div><div id="116">

<p>"After that, it is stated by the ancient writers, how the
wild beasts were let out to him, and how greatly he desired to
be devoured by them, that he might be delivered from this body
of sin and death; so that both Jews and heathen who stood by,
were exceedingly astonished at him. Thus this pious witness of
the Son of God departed this life with an immovable heart, and
became united with Christ, his blood-bridegroom and Saviour."
Compare <i>Abr. Mell., 1st book, of the Hist., fol. 39,
col.</i> 1, 2, with <i>Joh. Gysii Hist., fol. 16, col. 4,</i>
and fol. 17, col. 1, from <i>Euseb., lib. 4.</i></p> 

<h2>VETIUS, SURNAMED PAGATHUS, PUT TO DEATH ON THE RIVER RHONE IN FRANCE, ABOUT THE YEAR 172*</h2> 

<p>When the persecution of the Christians on the River Rhone,
at Lyons and Vienne, in France, did not cease, but increased
the longer the more, so that those who confessed the name of
Christ, were forbidden, first their houses, then their
bath-rooms, and afterwards all public places, so that they
could stay neither in the house, nor in the city, nor without,
which was a cause of much suffering to them, it happened, that,
some of the brethren of the church of God there, having been
apprehended and brought before the President for examination, a
certain brother, called Vetius, and surnamed Pagathus, young in
years, but old and strong in the faith, went boldly before the
judge, and made himself known as a defender of the apprehended
Christians, whose cause he undertook to vindicate. The judge,
when he had heard his defense, refused it, and asked him,
whether he also was a Christian, or believer in Christ, upon
which he candidly confessed that he was. Immediately he was
enrolled among the Christian martyrs, and was called the
Advocate of the Christians.</p>

<p>He was so pious .and virtuous in his life that Eusebius
Pamphilius calls him, "Filled with ardent and divine love of the
Spirit; yea, testifies, that he had a perfect love to God, and
was upright towards all men; and that his life, though he was a
youth, was so tried and acceptable, that he excelled many old
persons, since he lived justly and unblamably, being ever ready
to minister to the servants of God."</p>

<p>It is finally stated that he followed the holy teacher
Zacharia, who had shown perfect love towards the holy martyrs,
and assisted and supported them; .and also, that, according to
the example of Jesus, his Saviour; he laid down his life for
his sheep and friends; that is, gave his life for the truth,
from love to the church of God, and to be a pattern of
constancy to them. Compare <i>Euseb., 5th book, cap. 1, fol.
80,</i> eol. 1, 2, with <i>Abr. Mell., 1st book, fol. 43,
col.</i> 1, 2, on the title <i>Vetius. Also, Joh. Gys.,
fol.</i> 17, col. <i>3,</i> though he differs with the others
in regard to the time.</p>

<br /><cite>* J. Gysius fixes the beginning of this
persecution of the Christians, at Lyons and Vienne, on the
river Rhone, in the year 179; but other authentic writers
commence it with the ear 172.</cite> 

<h2>ATTALUS, ROASTED IN AN IRON CHAIR, CAST BEFORE THE WILD BEASTS, HIS THROAT CUT, AND BEHEADED, ON THE RIVER RHONE, ABOUT THE YEAR 172</h2> 

<p>At the time ,that this awful pressure of conscience
continued under the Emperors Marcus Aurelius and Lucius Verus,
ceasing not until those who endeavored to live a Christian life
according to their faith, had ended their lives under many
torments, it came to pass that a certain pious Christian,
called Attalus, who had been apprehended for the name of Jesus,
his Saviour, was most inhumanly tortured, to the extent even,
that he was placed over the fire in an iron chair, and roasted.
When he was asked, what name the God of the Christians had, he
answered, "Where there are many gods, they are distinguished by
names; but where there is but one God, no name is necessary."
He was finally brought into the amphitheatre, to be devoured by
the wild beasts. But when these, either providentially, or
because they were already sated, did not touch him, neither
with their claws, nor with their teeth, he, together with other
pious martyrs, was stabbed through the throat. Some write that
he was then beheaded. Compare loh. <i>Gys., fol.</i> 17, col.
<i>4, and fol., 18, col. 1, with P. J. Twisck, Chron. 2d book,
for the year</i> 172, page <i>46,</i> col. <i>1, from</i> Hist.
<i>Andr. fol. 19. Also, Introduction to, etc., fol. 38,</i>
col. 1, taken from <i>Euseb., lib. 5,</i> cap. 2 and
<i>3.</i></p>

<h2>ALEXANDER OF PHRYGIA, FIRST DREADFULLY TORTURED, AND THEN EXECUTED WITH THE SWORD, FOR THE CONFESSION OF THE SON OF GOD, ON THE RIVER RHONE, ABOUT THE YEAR 172</h2> 

<p>The ancient writers mention also a certain pious man, called
Alexander, a physician, and native of Phrygia, who was put to
death on the same day and place when and where the
abovementioned Attalus laid down his life. Concerning the cause
of his imprisonment and death, it is stated, that, when At
talus and other Christians were being examined, this Alexander
of Phrygia stood near the judgment seat, and considerably
strengthened and encouraged, by motions and signs, the
Christians who were making their defense and confession before
the judge, to the end that they should continue steadfast in
the truth once received: When the people that stood around,
murmured on this account, he was apprehended, and, being
interrogated in regard to his views, he answered, "I am a
Christian," and made the same confession that Attalus and the
others who had been apprehended and were standing before the
tribunal, had made. He was therefore immediately sentenced to
the amphitheatre,-there, together with others, to be forthwith
torn or devoured by the beasts. Thither he was then taken. but
the execution was deferred until the following day. The next
day he was brought forth, to fight with the beasts; however, he
was first exceedingly tortured with all sorts of</p>

</div><div id="117"> 

<p>executioner's instruments. In this he bore himself with such
fortitude, that he was not once heard to sigh, or to utter the
least word of complaint; yea, he was not seen to manifest a
single sign of distress or pain; only that he spoke to God in
his heart. Finally, instead of fighting with the wild beasts,
he was executed with the sword, and thus sealed with his blood
the truth of the Son of God, which he had maintained. Compare
with the authors who have been adduced above in regard to the
death of Attalus, Abr. <i>Mellin., 1st book, f ot. 43, cot. 4,
and fol. 44, cot. 1.</i></p>

<h2>MATURUS, SANCTUS, BLANDINA, AND A YOUTH FROM PONTUS, MOST MISERABLY TORMENTED, ON THE RIVER, RHONE, ABOUT THE YEAR 172</h2> 

<p>It is manifest from the ancient writers, that in and about
the time that Attalus was slain, various other martyrs were
likewise put to death for the sake of Jesus Christ, almost in
the same manner, or, at least, with equally great torments.
Some of these martyrs are not mentioned, while others are,
namely, Maturus, Sanctus, Blandina, and a youth of fifteen
years, from Pontus. Touching the circumstances of their
suffering and death, we find that, in substance, it occurred,
in the following manner</p>

<p>First, three of the aforementioned persons, namely, Maturus,
Sanctus, and Blandina, were exceedingly and dreadfully
tormented, especially Blandina, for whom the others stood in
great fear, that, not being able to endure the pain, she might
be in danger of denying Christ. But she was so steadfast in all
her sufferings that the hands of the executioners grew tired
before her heart would faint. It is a cause of great
astonishment, what Eusebius Pamphilius has written concerning
her, namely, that the executioners began early in the morning,
and continued tormenting her all day until evening, so that
they were much surprised, how it could be possible that life
was not yet extinct in her. However, he explains this by saying
that as often ,as she repeated her confession, crying, "I am a Christian," her heart was stengthened, so that shef
was again enabled to endure the pain.</p>

<p>Sanctus, who was a deacon, or one who ministered to the
poor, was tormented with red-hot plates of copper, which were
applied to his belly. Being questioned, in the meantime, in
regard to his name, parentage, and native country, he named
neither of these, but simply said, "I am a Christian; that is my
name, my parentage, and my country; indeed, I am altogether
nothing else than a Christian." This inflamed the tyrants with
unspeakable rage against him, and they continued to torment him
on his whole body, to such an extent, that it was but one
wound. But he remained fearless and undaunted; for the heat of
the fire was tempered by the heavenly consolations of Jesus
Christ, which he experienced in his soul.</p>

<p>Maturus was treated almost in the same manner, and remained
equally steadfast. Having been thus dreadfully tormented, the
aforementioned three persons were again cast into prison. Then
they were again taken from the prison, and tormented once more;
first Blandina, and then Maturus and Sanctus. The mode of
torture was, according to Eusebius, by many stripes; but Abr.
Mellinus states,"That they were scourged a second or third
time, with all kinds of rods, as well as beaten with sticks,
cudgels, and three-cornered and barbed splinters; and also,
pinched, cut, carved and torn, with all sorts of hooks,
cutting-knives, claws, pincers, and iron combs." Finally, when
many thousands had collected about the amphitheatre, Maturus
and Sanctus were placed, in the same manner as the
aforementioned Attalus, on iron chairs, under which a great
fire was kindled, so that their flesh, lacerated by many
stripes, was forthwith consumed by virtue of the fire; however,
when the enemies of the truth saw that their spirit was
immovable, they beheaded both of them.</p>

<p>Of Blandina it is stated that she was stretched out
cross-wise, and tied to a stake, to be cast as food before the
wild beasts; however, she was taken away again, and led into
prison. But afterwards, on the last day of the games, she was
again brought forth, together with a youth from Pontus (whom we
have mentioned above), and who, by the command of the judge,
had witnessed the suffering and death of the preceding martyrs,
that it might strike terror into his heart. Being placed in the
middle of the place of execution, before the judge, they were
commanded to swear by the gods, which they refused to do,
reproving at the same time, the idolatry of the heathen. At
this the heathen were much incensed, and again tormented them
greatly, yea, so much so, that the youth, unable to endure it,
gave up the ghost. Blandina rejoiced so greatly in the
steadfastness of the departed youth, whom she had adopted as
her son, as well as in the death of her faithful friends, who
had already gone through the conflict, that, being beaten by
the tyrants, she leaped for joy. Touching her death, it is
stated, that she was roasted upon a gridiron, and afterwards
wound in a net, thrown before bulls, which tossed her many a
time high up with their horns, and then let her fall down
again. She, however, not being dead yet, the judge commanded
that her throat be cut, which was done; though others say that
she was thrust through with a sword. Thus did this pious
martyress, and the other three martyrs of Jesus end their
lives, and are now awaiting the blessed reward which the Lord
will give on the great day of recompense to all those who have
suffered and fought even unto death, for His name's sake.
Compare <i>Euseb., lib. 5, cap. 1-3, edit. Dord., 1588, fol.
81-86 with Abr. Mell., 1st book, fol. 43, cot. 2-4, about
Blandina and Ponticus;</i> also, fol<i>. 44, cot. 1, 2, about
Sanctus and Maturus. Also, Introduction, etc., fol. 38, cot, 1,
2. Also, J. Gys., 1657, fol. 17, cot. 3, 4.</i></p>

</div><div id="118"> 

<h2>AN OLD MAN OF NINETY YEARS, CALLED PHOTINUS, MISERABLY MALTREATED FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, BEFORE THE TRIBUNAL, AT LYONS, IN FRANCE; WHO AFTERWARDS DIED IN THE
PRISON, ABOUT THE YEAR 179</h2> 

<p>In <i>Eusebius' Church History,</i> as well as in several
other ancient writers, mention is made of a certain old man, of
more than ninety years, called Photinus, a teacher of the
church at Lyons, in France. It is stated of him, that on
account of his great age he could not walk, but, having such a
burning desire to die for the name of Christ, he, as A.
Mellinus has recorded, had himself carried before the judgment
seat, in order to be sentenced to death with the other martyrs.
When he was brought to the tribunal by the soldiers, the
magistracy of the city of Lyons, and the whole multitude of the
people followed him, and began to cry out, that he was a
Christian, together with much calumniating and abusive
language. Eusebius says, that, as this old man stood before the
judge at the tribunal, the common people began to cry"This is
Christ Himself."</p>

<p>When the judge thereupon asked him, who the God of the
Christians was, he answered with remarkable candor, "If thou art
worthy of it, thou shalt know." This displeased the judge so
greatly, that he commanded that this pious witness of Jesus
should be struck in his face with fists. Upon this, he was most
unmercifully pushed, kicked, pulled, and knocked by the
by-standers, and thrown at with whatever they could get hold
of, without regard to the feebleness of his age; yea, they
considered those accomplices with him, who did not show enough
diligence in assaulting and every way abusing this aged
man.</p>

<p>Photinus, having been thus maltreated, yea, nearly beaten to
death, so that life seemed almost extinct, was taken from the
tribunal back into prison, where, after two days of great
misery, having commended his soul into the hands of God, he
died, and thus attained to a blessed end. Compare <i>Euseb.,
5th book, 2d chapter, fol. 83, col. 1, 2</i> with <i>Joh. Gys.,
fol.</i> 17, col. 1, on <i>the name Photinus. Also, A. Mell.,
1st book, fol. 46, col. 2, from various other authors. Also,
Introduction, fol. 38, col. 1, erroneously called
Photimus.</i></p>

<h2>ALCIBIADES, A PIOUS CHRISTIAN, MARTYRED AT LYONS IN FRANCE, ABOUT THE YEAR 179</h2> 

<p>In the letter of the church at Lyons and Vienne, there is
mentioned, among various pious martyrs who suffered for the
name of Jesus Christ, Alcibiades, of whom it is stated that he
held a very retired and austere life, his diet consisting of
nothing but salt, bread and water. This manner of life he also
wished to continue in prison, but being instructed by the pious
man Attalus, that thereby he would leave to his brethren and
fellow-martyrs a.seeming reproach for luxuriousness of life, if
they would not do likewise, he thenceforth partook also of
other food, with thankfulness. However, this did not last long,
since he was soon deprived, not only of food, but of life
itself; for in the aforementioned letter he is called a martyr,
which was generally understood to mean one of those who
suffered a violent death for the name of Jesus, the Son of God,
and had valiantly passed through the conflict. Compare
<i>Euseb., 5th book, cap. 3,</i> with <i>Abr. Mell., 1st book,
fol.</i> 49, col. <i>3, 4.</i></p>

<h2>EPIPODIUS OF LYONS, AND ALEXANDER, THE GREEK, MARTYRED FOR THE TESTIMONY OF THE EVAN GELICAL TRUTH, AT LYONS IN FRANCE; THE ONE BEHEADED, AND THE OTHER CRUCIFIED, ABOUT THE YEAR 179</h2> 

<p>In the seventeenth year of the Emperor Marcus Aurelius,
there were slain, among other pious martyrs at Lyons in France,
Epipodius, a citizen of Lyons, and Alexander, a Greek by birth;
whose imprisonment, suffering, and death occurred in this wise:
When the heathen thought that the Christian name was entirely
extirpated at Lyons and Vienne, and that no person who
confessed it was remaining, these two, as the remainder of the
Christians there, were betrayed, accused, and, three days
afterwards, placed before the tribunal of the Governor. There
they were interrogated in regard to their name and confession
of faith, to which questions they candidly replied. Their
answers enraged the judge beyond measure, and he commanded that
Epipodius, who was the principal speaker, should be smitten on
the cheek, which was done in such a manner that be bled from
his nose and mouth. But this made this champion of Christ,
though he was still young, only the bolder and firmer, and he
said, "I confess that Christ, with the Father and the Holy
Ghost, is the only true God; and I deem it right, that I should
pour out my soul (that is, my life) for Him who is my Creator
and Redeemer; for thus, my life will not be taken from me, but
changed into a better one. Besides, it matters but little, how
and in what manner this weak body is released and separated
from the soul, only so that the soul be returned to God, its
Creator."</p>

<p>When Epipodius had, in steadfastness, finished this
confession, he was suspended, at the command of the judge, on a
stake, on both sides of which the executioners stood, drawing
deep gashes with cutting hooks or claws into his sides. In the
meantime the raging multitude cried, that he should be stoned
to death, or torn limb from limb; for the judge was much too
slow in pronouncing his sentence of death. Then the judge had
him brought out with great haste, and beheaded, and thus this
pious witness of the Son of God attained to a blessed end.</p>

<p>Alexander, the above mentioned Greek, was brought out of
prison, two days after the death of his beloved brother
Epipodius, and placed be</p>

</div><div id="119"> 

<p>fore the tribunal, where he defended himself most
cheerfully, manifesting, at the same time, his great desire to
be counted among the number of his slain brethren and sisters.
The judge immediately commanded that Alexander should be
stripped, and beaten by three executioners, with sticks,
cudgels, etc.; but in all these torments he steadfastly called
upon God for help and succor. In short, the sentence of death
was pronounced upon him, namely, that he should die on the
cross. The executioners then tied him on the cross; but having
previously been wounded, by many stripes, to such a degree that
his bones or bare ribs were visible, as well as the vital parts
of his viscera, namely, the lungs, the liver, the heart, etc.,
which could be observed moving, he gave up the ghost, before
the executioners could inflict further tortures upon him; and
thus, in steadfastness he died a blessed death. When this had
taken place, he was buried with his friend Epipodius, who had
been beheaded, on the 24th of April 179. <i>Abr. Mell., 1st
book, fol.</i> 48, col. 1-4. <i>ex act. Proconsular. Homil.
Eucherii Episc. Lugd. sub nomine Eus., Emisseni de Blandina and
ahis Ado hienn., Mart.</i> 22 <i>April.</i></p>

<h2>LEONIDES, PLUTARCHUS, AND OTHERS, PUT TO DEATH FOR THE NAME OF CHRIST, ABOUT THE YEAR 180</h2> 

<p>Leonides, Plutarchus, and others, who had attained to the
Christian faith, were now visited with many torments, and put
to death for the name of Christ. P. <i>J. Twisck, Chron. 2d
book, for the year</i> 180, pig. 47, col. 1.</p>

<h2>WHAT TRANSPIRED WITH THE CHRISTIANS DURING THE FOURTH PERSECUTION</h2> 

<p>This persecution caused an unexpected and terrible
pestilence, which devastated countries and inhabitants,
especially Italy, so that the Christians were forgotten; for
there were villages that had been ravaged to such an extent,
that they became entirely depopulated, and lay there waste and
without inhabitants. <i>Keyser's Chronijk, van Christi Geboorte
tot op Carolus V.,</i> printed A. D. 1563, fol. 17, col. 1,
<i>for the year of the beginning of this persecution,</i>
164.</p>

<p>Likewise, that besides the preceding martyrs whom we have
mentioned by name, there were also put to death, during the
preceding persecutions, the two pious men Sagaris and Thraseas,
together with other believing Christians, is shown from
Eusebius Pamphilius, by <i>A: Mellinus, in the first book o f
his history, fol.</i> 42, col. 2.</p><br />

<br />

   <h1>AN ACCOUNT OF THE HOLY BAPTISM OF THE MARTYRS IN THE THIRD CENTURY</h1>

<h2>SUMMARY OF BAPTISM IN THIS CENTURY</h2> 

<p>[Among the witnesses of true baptism we have accorded
Tertullian the first place, because it was in the very early
part of this century that he flourished and spread abroad the
fame of his doctrine. He rebuked those who brought such as were
too young to be baptized, justifying his rebuke with conclusive
reasons.</p>

<p>Leonilla, a Christian grandmother, had her three grandsons,
Sosyphus, Cleosyphus, and Melosyphus, baptized after previous
instruction.</p>

<p>Then comes Origen, surnamed Adamantius, who gives very
excellent and salutary expositions, not only in regard to
baptism, but also with reference to various other religious
matters.</p>

<p>Three very learned men, Virian, Marcellinus, and Justin,
confer with one another, and are baptized upon their .faith;
likewise also Pancratius, the son of the believing Chonius;
also, Bazilla, an honorable maiden, who was baptized after
having been instructed by Protus and Hiacyntus; and thus also
was baptized, after having been instructed in the faith by
Pontianus, Pontus, the son of a Christian, called Marcus.</p>

<p>Nemesius instructed and baptized those who attained to the
faith.</p>

<p>Cyrillus Hierosolymitanus exhorted those who came to his
baptism, that they should first fast forty days on account of
their sins.</p>

<p>We conclude with some who in regard to baptism and the
Lord's Supper held views different from those of the Catholic
(that is, Roman) Church, from which latter they had separated
themselves, and with this completes the account of baptism in
this country.]</p>

<p>We do not find it stated by a single authentic author, as
has been shown, that during the first two centuries any one
departed from the foundation of Christ's true order of baptism,
that is, from baptism upon faith, by changing this, the true
baptism, into a vain or infant baptism; but it appears that in
the third century there were men who not only originated, but
also put it in practice and administered the same; yet it was
adopted only in a few places. <i>J. Mehrn. in Baptism. Hist.,
page</i> 164, <i>num. 10. H. Montanus, in Nietighz. van den
Kinder-doop, second edition, p.</i> 17.</p>

<p>It would not be out of order to give a two-fold account of
this matter: in the first place, by whom, how, and in what
manner baptism was then practiced in the true church of God; in
the second place, by whom, how, and in what manner, infant
baptism originated and was observed by some, at that time. But
since it is not our purpose here to refute this error, but
simply to show how true baptism, as instituted by Christ, and
practiced by the holy apostles, has been observed, taught and
preached from century to century; and how the church of God
blossomed in that faith, as a rose amidst thorns; therefore we
will pass by this question, since it does not properly belong
here; however, we shall speak of it in a separate place, but
proceed now in our account.</p>

<p><i>About the year</i> 204.-This is the time in which, it is
stated, the celebrated Tertullian flourished,</p>

</div><div id="120"> 

<p>who, seeing that baptism was administered to the catechumens
(learners) too soon, inasmuch as some began to baptize them
while they were yet children, wrote, in order to prevent this,
as follows, "It is more expedient to defer baptism, according to
the condition, circumstances, and age of each particular
individual, than to precipitate it. Again, "It is true, the Lord
says: 'Forbid them not to come unto me.' Let them come, then,
when they increase in years; let them come, when they learn and
are taught whereto they come; that they may become Christians;
when they can know Christ. Why hasten ye the innocent youths to
the forgiveness of sins? We should exercise more prudence in
temporal matters, than to entrust with divine things those to
whom we do not entrust earthly; that they may know to desire
salvation, in order that it may appear that it was given to
him, who desired it." <i>Lib. de Baptismo, cap. 18. Also, H.
Mont. Nietigheyd, page 17.</i></p>

<p>These words contain several dissuasions against baptizing
too early. The first reason is based on the unprofitableness of
hastening with it, and is contained in these words, "It is more
profitable to defer baptism, according to the condition,
circumstances, and age of each particular individual, than to
hasten it." The second reason is founded on the import of the
words of Christ, "Forbid them not to come unto me;" with
reference to which he says, "Let them come then, when they increase in years." The third
reason he bases on the innocence or simplicity of those
children, saying, "Why hasten ye the innocent youths?" The
fourth reason he founds on the imprudence manifested thereby,
saying, "We should exercise more prudence in temporal matters
than to trust with divine things those to whom we do not
entrust earthly things." The fifth reason, finally, he bases on
the desire for salvation which the candidate for baptism must
have, saying, "That they may know to desire salvation, in order
that it may appear, that it was given to him who desired
it."</p>

<p>It appears therefore throughout these words of Tertullian,
how greatly he was opposed to having baptism administered too
hastily to ignorant and inexperienced young persons; and, on
the other hand, how gratifying would it have been to him, if,
having reached the years of maturity, and been instructed and
taught, they would have been baptized upon their own desire to
be saved.</p>

<p>This manner of baptizing he mentions in another place,
stating at the same time, how this baptism was administered by
him and his own people. He says, "When we go to the water, and
first begin with baptism, we confess there, even as we did
before in the church, under the hand of the overseer,* that we
renounce the devil with all his adherents and angels; after
which we are dipped three times, which answers more than the
Lord has laid down</p>

<br /><cite>* The leader, or minister or bishop.-Publishers.
in the Gospel."* In <i>lib. de Corona Militis, cap. 3 and
4.</i> Also, <i>H. Mont. Nietigheyd, page 16.</i></cite> 

<p>He states it still more clearly in <i>Lib. de Spectaculis,
cap. 4:</i> "When we, having gone into the water, confess the
Christian faith upon the words of his law, we testify with our
mouth, that we have renounced the devil, his pomp, and his
angels."</p>

<p>And that this may be practiced and maintained in truth, he
gives, to the candidates for baptism this instruction (Lib. de
Baptismo, cap. <i>20), "Those</i> who are to be baptized, must
supplicate with much praying, fasting, bending of knee, and
watching, confessing all their former sins, so that they may
show forth John's baptism.""They were baptized," says
he,"confessing their sins." Matt. <i>3:6.</i></p>

<p>Then he shows what baptism is, and what it signifies; from
which we can clearly see that at least in his estimation infant
baptism was not authorized. He says, "The washing of water is a
seal of the faith; which faith begins with, and is known by the
penitence of the believer. We are not washed, in order that we
may cease to sin; but because we have ceased, and are washed in
heart, for this is the first immersion of him that hears."**
<i>Lib. de Pwnitentia, cap. 6.</i> Also, J. <i>du Bois,
Seckerheyd van, etc.,</i> printed <i>A. D. 1648, page
47.</i></p>

<p>If you wish to learn still more of the views of Tertullian
concerning baptism as instituted by Christ, read <i>lib. de
Prescript, adversus Hwreticos, cap. 36,</i> cited by H,.
<i>Montanus, in Nietigh., page 23,</i> and by J. du <i>Bois</i>
(although he misinterprets this passage), <i>Contra Montanum,
page 44,</i> where Tertullian writes thus, "Well, then, ye who
would inquire more fully into the matter of your salvation,
take a view of the apostolic churches, in which the chairs of
the apostles are still occupied by their successors, and where
their own authentic epistles are still read, sounding their
voices, and calling up their very forms. If Achaia is near you,
there is Corinth; are you not far from Macedonia, there is
Philippi, and there Thessalonica; can you come into Asia; there
is Ephesus; but are you near Italy, there is Rome. Let us see,
what she (namely the church there) has said, what she has
taught, and in what she has agreed with the African churches.
She recognizes one God, the Creator of all things, and Christ
Jesus from the virgin Mary, the Son of God the Creator, and the
resurrection of the flesh; she unites the ,law and the prophets
with the evangelical and apostolical writings, and there-</p>

<br /><cite>* The above quotations from Tertullian, are
given by Van Braght to show that he in no wise sanctioned
infant baptism and from the remark at the close of the
paragraph"which answers (says) more than the Lord has laid down
in the Gospel," it appears that even Tertullian himself,
though, as it appears. he practiced it, does not claim Gospel
authority for it.-The Publishers.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* Tertullian here speaks of repentance and
regeneration, showing how that the heart must be changed and
cleansed with the"washing of water by the word," and then
says, "for this is the first immersion (indoopinge) of him that
hears," by which he evidently means to show that this spiritual
change of the heart is first in importance. Karl Tauchnitz in
his Dutch-German Dictionary gives the definition of"Indoopen:
Einweihen;" to consecrate or initiate, of which baptism is also
a signification. In this sense we might say: This is the first
baptism, or the first consecration, or the most important work
of him that hears, or of him that would be saved.-The
Publishers.</cite> 

</div><div id="121"> 

<p>from drinks this faith, which she seals with water, clothes
with the Holy Ghost, feeds with the eucharist, or Lord's
Supper, and confirms by martyrdom; and receives no one contrary
to this institution." Thus far, <i>Tertullian.</i></p>

<p>To this we say, "It is indeed true, that he here speaks
against the errors of Valentinus, Marcion, and the like; but
since this occasions him to say, that all the churches which he
mentions, especially the one at Rome, in which the apostolic
doctrine was still sounded at that time, sealed the faith,
which he opposes to said errors, with water, and that they
received no one contrary to this institution; any one can
clearly see, that all the above named churches administered
baptism at that time to adults, who could drink that faith from
the evangelical and apostolical writings; and not this only,
but could also partake of it by the use of the eucharist, and
confirm it by martyrdom, which are things that children cannot
do." <i>Ergo.</i></p>

<h2>TERTULLIAN'S VIEWS CONCERNING DIFFERENT OTHER MATTERS, ACCORDING TO THE ACCOUNT OF P. J. TWISCK</h2> 
<p>"Tertullian," says Twisck,"exhorts Christian women, in a
book written to his wife, not to enter into marriage relations
with the heathen, saying that it is impossible for them to live
long in peace and friendship. He says: 'What must the heathen
husband think, when he sees, or hears it said that his wife
kisses on the cheek the first Christian whom she happens to
meet?"', "Again, In a book on patience, when speaking of the
apostates and of withdrawing from them, he says that patience
governs all manner of salutary doctrines, and remarks: 'What
wonder then, that it also serve to repentance to those who are
wont to come to the help of the apostate, whether it be man or
wife, when separated one from another, nevertheless by such
things as are lawful, to be led to maintain their widow or
widowerhood. It is patience that waits for repentance, hopes
for it and exhorts to it those who would yet at some time
attain to salvation. How great the benefit it confers upon
both-the one it preserves from adultery, the other it
reforms.'* Again he says: 'Do you think that it is hard for a
Christian to suffer? He would rather die himself, than to kill
others; and if you smite a Christian, he glories in it.' 1, "Again, 'As the religion of others does not concern us, and
neither profits nor harms us; therefore, it does not become any
one religion to force</p>

<br /><cite>* The foregoing quotation from Tertullian is
ambiguous in the Holland language and appears to have been so also in the
original. Dr. Karl Ad. Heinrich Kellner, Prof. of Theol. at
Heidelsheim, in his German translation of the"Complete Works of
Tertullian" renders this passage as follows, which he says he
holds as the correct rendering, "What wonder then that it
(patience) also unites itself with repentance and is, aside
from separation in the marriage relation, the usual means of
relief for the apostate-this, however, only for the reason that
we, whether it be for the man, or whether it be for the wife,
in widowhood may hope for constancy. It is patience that waits
for salvation with those who in their own time would seek
repentance, that longs for it and prays for it. How .g,lta
benefit it works for bothl The one it preserves from adulhe
other it purifies.'-The Publishers.</cite> 
<p> itself upon another, since
it must be accepted voluntarily, and not by coercion, for what
is required is the offering of a willing mind."' (This agrees
with Ex. <i>25, 35</i> and <i>36. Chr. Leonh., lib. 1. Seb.
Fir. in the Arke fol. 174. Stand der Religie, lib. 4. Grond.
Bew. letter B. Menn.</i> Sym. <i>Doop. C., fol. 8. Th. Imbroek,
fol. 28.) .</i>, "Again, Tertullian (in his fourth book against Marcion)
quoting the words of Christ: <i>This is my body,</i> that is, a
figure of my body, says: 'It would not have been a figure, had
His body not been real; for a phantasm, or mere illusion,
cannot have a figure or shadow?' With this he means to prove
that Christ had a real body; and what he here calls a figure,
he, in the fifth book, calls a sacrament, with the express
words: 'The bread and the cup.' Still more clearly he says in
the first book: 'Neither did he despise or reject the bread, by
which he represented or typified his body.'", "He says: 'These words of Christ: This is my <i>body,</i> we
must understand as though Christ had said: This is the sign and
figure of My body. I pass over Dionysius Alexandrinus, and
Paulinus, who both treat in the same manner of the above
sacrament."' <i>Tertul. Apolog., cap. 39. Euseb. lib. 6 and 9.
Daniel Saut., lib. 1, cap. 6.</i>, "Again, Tertullian says: 'We must not seek the faith from
the persons, but prove the persons by the faith."' <i>De
Praescript, lib. 4. P. J. Twisck, Chron. 2d book, page 53, eol.
1, 2.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-Tertullian taught at this time, "We have the apostles
for authors, who established nothing according to their own
inclination, but faithfully taught the nations that which they
had received from God." <i>Lib. 1, PrTscript.</i></p>

<p>He writes further that"all churches are apostolic churches,
though they may have been founded long after the time of the
apostles, if they have but kinship with the doctrine." <i>Lib.
1.</i> PrTsc. See <i>Samuel heltius, in the Geslacht-register
der Roomscher Successie, second edition, 1649 pages 115,
116.</i></p>

<p>Tertullian says among other things, "The emperors would have
believed in Christ, if the world had not prevented them; for
they could not become Christians, because they had to serve the
world, and carry on war." See, <i>Grondelijke Verklaringe
Danielis ende Johannis,</i> printed at <i>Harlem, 1635, on
Tertullian.</i></p>

<p>Vicecomes, in his first book on baptism, chap. 1, notes the
following testimony from Tertullian <i>(lib. 1, cap.
4.), "There</i> is no difference between those whom John
baptized in Jordan and those Peter baptized in the Tiber." With
this he intends to prove that in the first days of Christianity
there were neither baptismal fonts nor churches. J. M.,
<i>Baptism. Hist., page 276.</i></p>

<p>Again says Tertullian, "Thus, when we go into the water of
baptism, we justly confess our sins and the Christian faith."
<i>Vicecom., lib. 4, cap. 7,</i> and J. M., <i>Baptism. Hist.,
page 277.</i></p>

</div><div id="122"> 

<p>These last two passages from Tertullian we have adduced over
and above what was necessary, but they are not useless, since
they confirm what we have said above about baptism; for by the
first the superstition which was wont to be connected with the
water, the baptismal font, and the church in which baptism was
administered, is removed, or at least (per
consequentiam)controverted; and the second states that it is
proper to confess our sins, and the Christian faith, at
baptism. And therewith he proves that it is not proper to be
baptized without confessing one's sins, and the Christian
faith. What has been said is sufficient for the intelligent.
With this we take our leave of Tertullian.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 224.-Leonilla, a Christian grandmother, had
three grandsons, Sosyphus, Cleosyphus, and Melosyphus. She
begged Romigius that he would instruct the three lads in the
Christian faith, and then baptize them. This was done in a
godly manner. P. 1. <i>Twisck, Chron. for</i> the year 224, 3d
<i>book, page</i> 60, cot. 1, from <i>Grond. Bew., letter
B..</i> Also, <i>Kort verhal van den loop der werelt,</i>
printed 1611, <i>page 47.</i></p>

<p>From this it will be seen, that at that time and place
Christians were not in the habit of having their children or
grandchildren baptized, unless these had reached riper years,
and been instructed in the faith, which, when they confessed
it, they were baptized upon. This should be borne in mind.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 231.-At this time there flourished as a writer
the celebrated Origen, surnamed Adamantius, who, treating on
baptism, writes thus (Homil. 6, <i>super. Ezechidem)</i> on
Ezekiel, 16:4, " 'Neither wast thou washed in water to supple
thee,' etc.: We, who have received the grace of baptism in the
name of Jesus Christ, are washed unto salvation. Simon was
washed, and when he had received baptism, continued with
Philip; but not being washed unto salvation, he was condemned
by him who through the Holy Ghost said to him: 'Thy money
perish with thee.' It is a matter of great importance that he
who is washed, be washed unto salvation., "Be very heedful of this, ye catechumens, or learners, and
prepare yourselves by what is told you while you are yet under
instruction and unbaptized , ano then come to the washing of
water, and be washbd unto salvation. But be not washed as some,
who are washed, but not unto salvation; like those who receive
the water, but not the Holy Ghost., "He that is washed unto salvation, receives the water and
the Holy Ghost., "Because Simon was not washed unto salvation, he received
the water, and not the Holy Ghost; for he thought he could
purchase the gift of the Holy Ghost with money, wherein he was
not washed unto salvation., "That which we now read as having been spoken at Jerusalem,
is addressed to every sinful soul that seems to believe." Also,
<i>H. Mont. Nietigh., pp.</i> 36, 37. he above words of Origen
indicate the manner of baptism which prevailed in his time,
namely, that the candidates for baptism were first catechumens,
that is, learners, who were instructed in the faith, and had to
prepare themselves to this end, before they were baptized. For,
when he says, "Be very heedful of this, ye catechumens, or learners, and
prepare yourselves by what is told you while you are yet under
instruction and unbaptized; and then come to the washing of
water," etc., what else is meant by it, than that it confirms
what John required of those who came to him to be baptized,
saying, "Bring forth therefore fruits meet for repentance,"
Matt. 3:8; that is, prepare yourselves by a true reformation of
life, so that you may receive baptism worthily.</p>

<p>Then, on the words, Ezek. 16:5, "But thou wast cast out in
the open field," etc., he (Origen) comments thus, "If we sin
again after the washing of regeneration, we are cast away,
according to the Word of God, in the day that we are born: such
are frequently found, who, after they have been washed by the
washing of regeneration, do not bring forth fruits meet for
repentance; nor do they live up to the mystery of baptism, with
more fear than they had while they were yet catechumens, or
learners; or with more love than they exercised when they were
still hearers of the Word; or with holier deeds than they
performed before. Beloved, observe what is said in the text:
'Thou wast cast out in the open field, for the wickedness of
thy soul, in the day that thou wast born."' H. <i>Mont.,</i>
same page as above.</p>

<p>By these words he confirms the import of his former
declaration, namely,"That those who are to be baptized, must
first be catechumens, or learners, and, being baptized, they
must be truly regenerated;" and thus he calls baptism"the
washing of regeneration," even as Paul, Tit. 3:5.</p>

<p>Moreover, he complains that those who were washed by the
washing of regeneration, did not bring forth fruits meet for
repentance. By this he certainly means to say, that the
baptized person must be truly converted, and bring forth good
fruits. But how can he be converted, that is, turn from his
error, who never has erred? And how can it be demanded of him
to bring forth good fruits, who cannot be accused of ever
having brought forth bad fruits? Hence it is evident that he
does not say this with reference to the baptisr~ of infants,
since these, having never erred, or brought forth bad fruits,
cannot, through baptism, be required to turn from error, and
bring forth better fruits than they have brought forth
before.</p>

<p>That such baptism, accompanied with the mortifying of the
flesh, and resurrection unto a new life, is taught and
commended by Origen, is clearly expressed in his comments on
Rom. 6:3, "Know ye not, that so many of us as were baptized into
Jesus Christ were baptized into his death?" where he says, "But
it seems to me that the apostle in this chapter does not prefix
even the words: <i>'Know ye</i></p>

</div><div id="123"> 

<p><i>not,'</i> without a purpose. He thereby proves that at that
time, that is, in the days of the apostles, it was not as it is
now, that those who were baptized, received only the outward
figure of the mysteries,. but that also the power and intent of
the same was imparted to them, and this to those who understood
it, and had been instructed concerning it: that those who are
baptized, are baptized into the death of Christ, and buried
with Him by baptism; and that those who are baptized must walk
in newness of life, even as Christ rose from the dead, through
the glory of the Father." Also, H. Mont. page 37.</p>

<p>This is certainly expressing plainly and unequivocally, of
what baptism he is treating,* namely., of such a baptism, of
which the power and intent was imparted to those who understood
it; by which they were buried into the death; by which they
were raised, to walk in newness of life, etc., all of which are
things that cannot be comprehended, much less undertaken and
carried out, ,by infants. In this manner he speaks also in
other places, as, for instance, in Hormilia 5, 4th and 5th
chapters of the book Joshua. Again, Homil. 9, 8th and 9th
chapters; Momil. 15, 11th chap. Also, Homil. 7, 15th chap. of
the book o f Judges. B. Hist. p. 291.</p>

<h2>NOTICE CONCERNING THE WRITINGS OF ORIGEN WITH REFERENCE TO BAPTISM</h2> 

<p>There are a few passages, namely, Homil. 8, on the 12th and
13th chapters of Leviticus; Homil. 14, on the 2d chap. of Luke;
Comment. on the 6th chap. of the Epistle to the Romans, from
which some who at this day uphold infant baptism suppose they
can draw something to show that Origen was not a stranger to
their views, but that he sanctioned them. But various eminent
writers deny, yea, completely refute this, it being proved that
these passages do not belong to Origen, but to Ruf$nus, the
priest at Aquileia, who, it is stated, more than one hundred
and fifty years.after Origen's time translated the works of the
latter from the Greek into Latin, adding from his own, that is,
out of his own mind the abovementioned passages, and, on the
other hand, leaving out other matters. To this explanation we
assent. See Ruflnus' prefatory and concluding remarks on
Origen's Commentary to the Epistle to the Romans. Also,
Erasmus' account of the life of Origen, prefaced to the works
of the latter, according to J. Mehrn., Bapt. Hist., pp. 283 and
291. Also, H. Mont. Nietigheyd van den Kinder-loop, pages
29-34, and 42, 43.</p>

<p>Besides this, various gross errors have of old been imputed
to Origen, as, for instance, that he believed, that the evil
spirits would ultimately be saved. However, he himself desires
this in a certain letter written to those of Alexandria, in
which he complains of the shamelessness of his adversaries,</p>

<br /><cite>* At this time Origen taught that we must appeal
to the Holy Scriptures; for without these no credence can be
given to what we say. On"Jeremiah, Homil. 1. ' See, Samuel
Veltius, in"Geslachtregister der," etc., page 115.</cite> 
<p>who
dared in his life time to defame him with slanders which not
even an insane man would utter. What, then, must have been the
treatment his writings received after his death!, "We may plainly see," says Jacob Mehrning,"from what we
still have of the writings of Origen, that many ignorant and
grossly erring spirits have sought to palm off to the
simple-minded, their own whims under the name of this eminent
man, who by Jerome (in Prefatione ante Ezechidem) is called the
second master of the church after the apostles." Bapt. Hist.
pp. 288 and 289. Also, H. Mont. Nietigh., pages 35, 36.</p>

<h2>TOUCHING DIFFERENT POINTS OF THE DOCTRINE OF ORIGEN, ACCORDING TO THE ACCOUNT OF P. J. TWISCK</h2> 

<p>A. D. 231.-"Origen, a man who abounds in spiritual
allegories, and who practiced himself what he taught others, as
church history testifies of him, began at this time to write
his books, and says to the catechumens: 'Repent, that ye may
receive baptism for the remission of sins.' Also: 'He that has
resolved to come and be baptized, but is not willing to forsake
his evil practices and- habits, but continues in his former
condition, does not come to baptism in the proper way.' With
reference to this, you may read, George hicelius, in his Form
en Aenteekening, en Welke Gestalte en form. de Kerk duysent
jaer stond, fol. 127., "Again: Origen was appointed by Demetrius, at Alexandria,
catechist, that is, teacher of the pupils of the faith, which
office was filled before him (after the apostles) by Plautinus
and'Clement. Of his pupils, Plutarch, Serenus, Heraclides,
Heron, and a woman, were martyred for Christ, before they were
baptized, thus obtaining the baptism of fire., "After Origen, Heracles, and after Heracles, Dionysius had
charge at Alexandria of the schools of the catechumens, that
is, of those who received instruction in the Christian
doctrine, preparatory to baptism., "Again: Origen says, that no one should be persecuted for
his faith, and that he who would live according to the Gospel
must not drive or compel his brother to an oath, nor swear such
an one himself, though it be demanded of him., "Again: On Matt. 23 he says: The Lord reprehends those
teachers who not only do not practice what they teach, but
also, tyrannously and unmercifully, without considering the
strength of their hearers, lay upon them burdens greater than
they can bear, namely, forbid them to marry, and over and above
what is expedient, would constrain them to an impossible
chastity., "Again: He says that it is altogether a letter that killeth,
that John should be understood literally and carnally. Hence he
insists strongly upon it, that the natural eating, of Christ's
body avails nothing, and that it must therefore be
spiritually</p>

</div><div id="124"> 

<p>understood and eaten. <i>Euseb., lib.</i> 6. <i>Chron. Seb
Frank, fol. 101 Leonh., lib. 1. Joh. Anast., fol.</i> 313., "Again: In his 12th, 15th, and 18th Homily on the Book of
Joshua., Origen writes thus: 'If the natural war of Joshua and
his people were not a figure and antitype of the spiritual war
of Christ and the Christians, the apostles, as
peace-proclaimers, would never have accepted, nor sanctioned
the reading of the books of Joshua in the heavenly Jerusalem of
the peaceful church and the peaceloving children of God.' And
he further proves by many arguments, that Christ, the Prince of
Peace, teaches peace, and not war; and that we are not to fight
with external, but only with spiritual weapons, against the
devil, the world, flesh, sin, and death., "Again: Speaking of the destruction of Ai, and the
extermination of the king and the people, he says: 'By this we
must not understand that the saints, at this day in the new
Testament, may shed blood, and kill with the natural sword:
these and like events are full of mysteries.' He explains
further, that we must utterly destroy Ai, that is, the kingdom
of darkness and sin, through the spiritual Joshua, Christ
Jesus. Col. 1; Eph. 6., "Again: Origen <i>(Homil in Mattheo 7)</i> says: 'The text
in Luke 22, about buying a sword, is pernicious (namely, for
the wicked) if understood literally, and not allegorically: for
he that should regard the letter, and not understand the will
and intent of God, but sell his garment, and buy a sword, would
understand the word of Christ contrary to His will.', "Again: In the book against Celsus the Second, he says that
'war has been abolished by the only God:, "Again: Of antichrist he says, from II Thess. 2, that he
sitteth in the temple of God, and, a little further on, he
says: 'Antichrist assumes merely the name of Christ, but does
not do His works; nor does he teach the words of truth. Christ
is the truth; antichrist is the spurious truth. He shows
himself here, as though he were Christ and the Word of God, but
is nevertheless the abomination of desolation."' P. <i>J.
Twisck, Chron.</i> 3d <i>book, p.</i> 61, from <i>Chron. Seb.
Fr., fol.</i> 65, 78. <i>Hieron.</i> Zauch., fol. 56. <i>Joh.
H.eyden Ncemb.,</i> fol. 226, 227.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 251.-It is recorded at this time, Virian,
Marcellinus, and Justin, learned men, in the reign of Emporer
Decius, conferred with one another about matters concerning the
Christians, and were well pleased with this holy religion; and
hearing that Christian believers were baptized, they sent for a
teacher* called Justin, and asked him to baptize them.</p>

<p>Justin rejoiced that such learned men wished to take upon
themselves the yoke of Christ. He began to instruct them, and
then had water brought, and baptized them on confession of
their faith. <i>P. J. Twisck, Chron.</i> 3d <i>book, page</i>
68, cot. 2, from</p>

<br /><cite>* The author employs the word"priest;" but
priest is derived mn the word"presbyter," that is, elder. We
say teacher.</cite> 

<p class="c8">Wicel. in Choro Sanctoruni, Grond. Bew., letter
B.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 253.-For this year, we read in ancient authors,
that Pancratius, the son of the believing Clionius, was
baptized at Mount Celius, when he was fifteen years old, after
he had been under instruction twenty days. Compare this with
<i>P. J. Twisck, Chron.</i> 3d <i>book, page</i> 71, cot. 1,
from <i>Wicel. Grond. Bew. letter B. Leonh., lib., 1.</i></p>

<p>Touching the circumstances of this matter, that is, of
Dionysius, who traveled with him, and the bishop Cornelius who
baptized him, to whom some have erroneously ascribed another
office, we leave it in its own merit and mention it no further.
It suffices us that it is evident from this, that at that time
the believers did not have their children bapized, till they,
having attained to understanding and riper years, themselves
desired to be baptized on their faith.</p>

<p><i>Same year</i> as <i>above.-Basilla, an</i> honorable and
discreet maiden, at Rome, in the reign of Emperor Galien,
learned the Christian faith from the eunuch Protus, and
Hiacynthus, and was also baptized by the above-mentioned bishop
Cornelius. <i>Grond. Bew. van den Doop,</i> printed 1581,
<i>letter B., ij.</i></p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 257.-Pontus, the son of Marcus, a Christian,
was orally instructed in the Christian religion, by the bishop,
or teacher, Pontian, and then baptized. P. <i>J. Tzeissck,
Chron.</i> 3d <i>book, p.</i> 73, cot. 1, from <i>Grond. Bezv.
letter B. Chron. Mich.,</i> fol 163. Also, <i>Loop der Werelt,
by F. H. H.,</i> printed 1611, page 47.</p>

<p>Here notice again that the afore-mentioned Pontus was not of
Jewish or heathenish, but of Christian descent; for he is
called the son of Marcus, a Christian; from which, as in the
case of Pancratius, it appears that the Christians suffered
their children to grow up unbaptized, till they attained to the
years of understanding.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 264.-At Rome, under the Emperors Valerian and
Galien, Nemesius and some others catechised; and, according to
the custom of the church, when they had held a fast, he
baptized all who believed. P. J. <i>Twisck, Chron. 3d book, p.
57,</i> cal. 1; word for word.</p>

<p>NOTE.-In the tract, <i>Grondig Bezvijs, en onderrechting van
den Doop,</i> printed A. D. <i>1581, letter B., ij.; ex Codice
Mariano,</i> the name Nernesius is not put in the nominative,
but in the accusative (objective) case; so that in this place
it seems that Nemesius was not the one who baptized, but one of
those who were baptized.</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 2.90.-The above cited examples of those
who were baptized on their faith, after having been instructed,
are confirmed by various teachings of Cyril of Jerusalem, who
then showed how those who were baptized should conduct
themselves before as well as after baptism. Jacob Mehrning
introduces him about the end of this century, or about A. D.
290, and adduces from his writing various passages which apply
in no wise to infant baptism, but very appropriately to'the</p>

</div><div id="125"> 

<p>baptism which is administered upon faith and repentance.</p>

<p>In <i>Baptism Hist., pages 317</i> and <i>318,</i> he has
this annotation <i>(cap. 8, ibid), "Cyril</i> himself exhorts
some catechumens who before had spent several years in
sensuality and lewdness, that they should not think it grievous
to do penance for forty days, saying: 'Beloved, forsake that
which is present, and believe in the things to come. So many
years you have spent, and served the world in vain; will you
not, then, begin, and for the sake of your souls, abstain for
forty days?"'</p>

<p>In <i>Baptism Hist., page 318,</i> we read <i>(Cyril in
Catech. 2, Mijstag.), "Repent,</i> O man, and the grace of
baptism shall not be withheld from thee.", "Again: Cyril strenuously exhorts such newly planted ones
unto godliness, so that when they go to receive baptism, they
will not be rejected, like the guest spoken of in the Gospel,
who did not have on a wedding garment. Therefore he says: 'Far
be it, that any of those who have given in their names for
baptism, and have been entered on the lists, should hear:
Friend, how camest thou in hither not having a wedding
garment?"' From <i>Vicecom., lib. 2, cap. 12, on Cyril.</i>, "Again he says (Cyril <i>in Catech. 3, Mijstag)</i> 'Begin
to wash your garments by repentance, that, being called to the
marriage of the Lamb, you may be found worthy."', "Again <i>(Baptism. Hist., page 319, Cyril Catech. 1,
Mijstag): 'Say</i> to those who are to be baptized: Hear the
voice of the prophet that saith</p>

<p>Wash ye, make you clean; put away from your souls the evils
of your doings before mine eyes; that the assembly of the
angels may call unto you</p>

<p>Blessed are they whose transgressions are forgiven, whose
sins are covered.'", "Again <i>cap. 6 (hicec.),</i> Cyril admonishes the newly
baptized: 'As you have put off the old garments, and put on
those that are according to the Spirit, you shall henceforth
always walk in white garments.' By this we do not mean to say
that it is necessary for you always to have on white garments,
but that you are to clothe yourselves in such garments as are
white, bright, and spiritual before God. And in cap. 10, he
says: 'Would to God, that we could all of a truth say: My soul
is joyful in the Lord; for he hath clothed me with the garments
of salvation, and with the robe of gladness.'"</p>

<p>Then he shows how holy, divine, and blessed a thing it is,
to have joined one's self by baptism to the nobility of Christ,
that is, to His church. It is truly wonderful, how
affectionately, sweetly, and comfortingly he addresses them,
saying, "You have now given in your names to the nobility of
Christ, and have received the bridal torches, the desire for
the kingdom of heaven, the good purpose, hope, etc." And,
<i>cap. 38,</i> he thus addresses the baptized, "Now the odor of
salvation is on you, O ye enlightened I Gather you heavenly
flowers, to make heavenly crowns of them. Now, now! he odor of
the Holy Spirit smells sweetly on you. You have been at the
gate of the King's palace. Would to God, that you were already
led before the King Himself. The blossoms have now appeared on
the trees; but, oh I that the fruit also were conceivedl"
<i>Jac. Mehrn. Baptism. Hist. on the third century, page
320.</i></p>

<p>How could it be possible that Cyril of Jerusalem should have
taught differently concerning baptism, than the Anabaptists
today teach, namely, that it must be accompanied by faith and
repentance; seeing he, as has been shown, employs throughout
such manner of speech as cannot be applied otherwise than to
this baptism, and by no means to infant baptism.</p>

<p>For instance, in the first passage he admonishes the
catechumens who had spent several years in voluptuousness, not
to think it grievous, to do penance before baptism for forty
days; which well accords with what was said to those who were
not prepared for baptism. Matt. <i>3:7, 8.</i></p>

<p>This he confirms in the five subsequent passages, using
these arguments: That they must not neglect to repent, so that
the grace of baptism may not be withheld from them. Again, that
they would not have to hear it said to them, as the unprepared
guest in the Gospel, "Friend, how camest thou in hither?" Again,
that they, being called to the marriage of the Lamb, might be
found worthy. Again, that to this end they should hear the
voice of the prophet, that saith, "Wash ye, make you clean; put
away the evil of your doings."</p>

<p>In the sixth passage he admonishes the newly baptized: As
you have put off the old garments (that is, forsaken the old
life) and put on those that are according to the Spirit (that
is, put on a new life), you shall henceforth always walk in
white garments, that is, henceforth you shall live a holy life
and pay unto God your vows made unto Him when you were
baptized. This is certainly a scriptural exposition, and is not
obscurely expressed in Cyril's words.</p>

<p>We now come to the seventh or last passage, of which we
shall say but little, as it contains not a single word which
does not clearly indicate that he speaks of the baptism of the
believers and penitent; for he there says to the baptized, that
being enlightened they now had on them the odor of salvation,
and admonishes them, to gather heavenly flowers with which to
make heavenly crowns, adding this wish, "The blossoms have now
appeared on the trees; but oh! that also the fruit were
conceived!"</p>

<p>Any one with only a little understanding can easily see that
these words of Cyril do not pertain to infants, and that he
therefore does not speak to infants or of infant baptism, but
is speaking to reasonable persons, and of the baptism that is
administered to such. Moreover, from his having previously
mentioned the catechumens, it is evident that it was customary
at that time in the church where he was teacher, first to
instruct the youth in the</p>

</div><div id="126"> 

<p>faith, and then, when they had accepted it, to baptize them
upon confession of it. Without contradiction, it was a
scriptural and holy custom, which proceeded not from human
reason like infant baptism, but from the mind of Christ and the
understanding of the holy apostles. With this we take our leave
from Cyril.</p>

<p>A. D. 300.-Arnobius, an old teacher says (in Psalms
146), "You are not first baptized, and then apprehend the faith,
and rejoice in it; but when you are about to be baptized, you
state before the teacher your perfect willingness, and make
your confession with your own mouth." P. J. <i>Twisck, Chron.,
3d book, page 82, col. 1, 2,</i> from <i>Grond. Bew., letter
B.</i></p>

<p>These words of Arnobius are very excellent, and show that at
his time they did not first baptize, and then apprehend faith;
but that the one to be baptized had to state his willingness
before baptism, and then to make confession of faith with his
own mouth. However, we shall speak more fully of Arnobius in
the succeeding century.</p>

<p><i>Same year as above.-It is</i> recorded that at this time
there were several persons who had separated from the catholic*
(Roman) church, namely: Dadoes, Sabas, Adelphius, Hermas and
Simeones, who were accused of heresy by the Roman church, and,
among other things, were charged with holding erroneous views
concerning the divine meat (that is, the sacrament of the
Lord's Supper), and of baptism (that is, infant baptism). As
regards the divine meat they were charged with holding the
opinion, that it neither profited nor injured; that is, that
the sacrament of the Lord's Supper had no intrinsic virtue or
value; and of baptism it was said that they maintained, that
those baptized were not benefited by baptism, but that fervent
prayer alone must expel the indwelling Satan.</p>

<p>Concerning these and other matters with which they were
charged, whether justly or unjustly, see <i>Hist. Eccles.
Tripart., lib. 7, cap. 11. S. Fr., Chron. Rom. Kett.,</i>
printed A. D. 1563, fol. 96, <i>letter E, under the name
Eraclit. Epulius.</i></p>

<p>Hence, when they said that those baptized were not benefited
by baptism, they thereby sufficiently rejected infant baptism,
since the Roman church in general recognized no other than
infant baptism. That this rejection of baptism, or deeming it
useless, has respect to infant baptism, is clearly evident from
what is added, namely, that they held that not baptism, but
fervent prayer must expel the indwelling Satan; for those of
the Roman church entertained the contrary view, namely, that
Satan must certainly be expelled from the infants by baptism.
However, we let every one judge for himself in this matter.</p>

<p>Jacob Mehrning in concluding the third century, says, "All
these are beautiful reminders, which were administered to the
catechumens before as well as after baptism, and which can
certainly not</p>

<br /><cite>* ilsca in the sense of general. have place with
infants. And thus it has been shown in this, the third chapter,
that in these three centuries infant baptism cannot be proven
by a single consistent and authentic testimony from the fathers
and church historians." <i>Baptism. Hist., pp. 320 and
321.</i></cite> 

<p>But this is further elucidated by the remark of P. J.
Twisck, who, quite at the close of the third century,
says, "Although infant baptism had been originated by some
individuals, or by the church (that is, the Roman), as they
themselves state, there were, nevertheless, many who devoutly
received baptism upon faith and with a penitent life."
<i>Chron.,</i> 3d <i>book, conclusion, pages 83 and 84.</i></p>

<p>With this we close our account of baptism as practiced in
the third century, and proceed to the martyrs who suffered
during this same time for the truth and their upright
faith.</p>

<a name="125"></a>
<h2>AN ACCOUNT OF THE PIOUS MARTYRS AND WITNESSES OF JESUS CHRIST WHO SUFFERED IN THE THIRD CENTURY: SUMMARY OF THE MARTYRS OF THE THIRD CENTURY</h2> 

<p>[There never was a time in the church of Jesus Christ, in
which so many and ,great tyrants arose to destroy and extirpate
the people of God, as in this century; for scarcely had one
ceased, when another began; excepting a short cessation under
the Emperors Caracalla and Geta.</p>

<p>The principal ones of those who tyrannized over, and put to
death, the believers, were Severus, Maximinus, Decius,
Valerianus, Gallienus, and Aurelianus, who, though the world
hailed them as"Gracious Emperors," were in deed nothing less
than unmerciful, cruel, and bloodthirsty tyrants.</p>

<p>Under Severus suffered Rutulius, Manilius, Perpetua,
Felicitas, Leonides, five God-fearing disciples of Origen, and
two of his female disciples, also Origen himself, and
Basilides.</p>

<p>Under Maximinus suffered, in different meetingplaces,
several thousand Christians, besides about seventy others.</p>

<p>Under Decius suffered Cointha, Apollonia, an old man called
Julianus, with his companion Eunus, Amonaria, Mercuria,
Dionysia, Heron, Ater, Isidoris, a youth of fifteen years,
Nemesius, Babylas, the three youths, Urbanus, Philidianus, and
Epilonius, also Maximus, Origenes.</p>

<p>Under Valerianus and Gallienus suffered Dionysius,
Fructuosus, Augurius, Eulogius, Marinus, the three peasants who
sought heavenly crowns, namely, Priscus, Malchus, and
Alexander, and also, Philippus, Privatus, Florentinus and
Pontius.</p>

<p>Under Aurelian suffered, and were put to death Privatus of
Gevauldan, Mamas, a shepherd and Symphorianus.</p>

<p>Under Diocletian (in the preparatory period of his
persecutions) were miserably put to death the</p>

</div><div id="127"> 

<p>three brothers, Claudius, Asterius, and Neon; also Donuina,
and Theonilla, Zenobius with his sister Zenobia, the three dear
friends Tharacus, Probus and Andronicus. That all these
suffered, and shed their blood for the name of Jesus Christ, is
abundantly testified in the following account.]</p>

<p>The third century began with the fifth persecution of the
Christians, hence we shall also begin with the same and show in
what a distressing condition the church of God was during those
times.</p>

<h2>OF THE FIFTH PERSECUTIONS OF THE CHRISTIANS, UNDER THE EMPEROR L. SEPTIMUS SEVERUS, COMMENCED ABOUT THE YEAR 201</h2> 

<p>Touching the cause which induced Severus to persecute and
put to death the Christians, ancient authors differ. Some write
that Severus was instigated to kill and persecute the
Christians, in the tenth year of his reign, by Philip, the
Governor of Egypt. Others think that in the time of Severus
there were many cruel and bloodthirsty governors in the
provinces of the Romans; as Lethus and Aquila, at Alexandria,
in Egypt; Saturninus and Scapula, at Carthage, in Africa.;
Claudius Herminianus, in Cappadocia; Cecilius Capella, at
Byzanthium; who, at Rome, as well as elsewhere, were most
pernicious firebrands in these persecutions, inasmuch as they
instigated the Emperor and the Roman Senate against the
Christians, in order that through this means they might seize
on the possessions of the Christians.</p>

<p>It is stated, that to this persecution and slaving of the
Christians, contributed at that time, not a little, some
jurists, who, through false interpretations of the Roman laws,
or at least through their selfdevised decrees, ruled nearly the
whole Empire; as Emelius, Papinianus, Ulpianus, Paulus,
Messius, Martianus, Rufinus, Mauritianus, Tryphonius, Menander,
Macer, Callistratus, Florentinus, Hermogenes, Saturminus,
Modestinus, Furius, and Anthianus.</p>

<p>It was one of these jurist, namely Ulpianus, one of the
chief senators, next to Papianus, who hunted up and collected
the bloody edicts of the former ,tyrants, in order that the
Emperors, incited thereby, might institute new persecutions
against the Christians. See concerning this, A. <i>Mell.
Hist.,</i> fol. <i>52, col. 4, from Euseb., 6, cap. 1,</i> 2,
and <i>Chron. Hieron. Catal. in Origen.</i> Also, <i>Oros.,
lib. 7, cap. 11,</i> 18. Also, <i>Baron.,</i> A. D. 204. Also,
Dio. <i>Hist. Rom., lib. 51.</i> Also, <i>Tert. ad. Scup., cap.
1-3. Tertul. de Fuga, cap. 5, ex Libris Jurist.</i> Also,
<i>Spart. Caracal. and Sever.</i> Also, <i>Lactant., lib. 5.
Just., cap. 11, 12, 19.</i></p>

<p>Very credibly, however, is the cause of this persecution
accounted for in the <i>Introduction to the Martyrs' Mirror,
Ed. 1631,</i> fol. <i>38, col. 2, from Baronius.</i> The words
are as follows, "In the year <i>201</i> was commenced the fifth
persecution of the Christians, under the Emeeror Severus, in
the seventh year of his reign. It originated thus: The em-
peror having come forth victorious from a civil war, and the
Christians having remained passive with regard to this, not
manifesting any signs of joy by way of celebrating, hanging out
of garlands, and other tokens of triumph, according to the
manner of the heathen; the latter, out of envy, accused the
Christians of despising and hating the Emperor; and the more
so, because they would not swear by the Emperor's fortune.
Besides this, they reported of the Christians, that in their
evening assemblies they extinguished the lights; and then
allowed themselves improper intercourse with each other, and in
this manner it came that every one hated the Christians. <i>See
in the above citations.</i> Others spread the report that the
Christians were child-murderers and eaters of human flesh, that
is, people who slew their children and ate them; also, that
they honored the head of an ass as their god; worshiped the
sun, and other like palpable and wicked falsehoods. Compare
<i>J. Gys. Hist.,</i> fol. 18, <i>col. 2, for the year 201, ex
Tertullian ad Scap</i>ulwn and in Apal. Cypr. <i>de Bono
Pascient.</i> Also, <i>P. J. Twisck, Chron. 2d book, for the
year 124, page 51,</i> col. 2.</p>

<p>However, though these false accusations were brought against
the Christians, their death was nevertheless owing entirely to
the testimony and confession of Jesus Christ-that He was the
Son of God, and the Saviour of the human family.</p>

<p>The most violent persecution of this time, according to
Eusebius and Tertullian, was in Egypt and Africa. From Egypt
the Christians were brought in great multitudes to Alexandria,
where they were put-to death in manifold ways, for the name of
Christ. Among the principal martyrs of this time were the
following:</p>

<h2>RUTILIUS, AFTER MANY ESCAPES, TORN ASUNDER, AND THEN BURNT, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, ABOUT THE YEAR 210</h2> <p>"Rutilius, the holy martyr," says Tertullian,"after having
so often escaped persecution by fleeing from one place to
another, and having purchased his freedom, as he supposed, from
the danger of death, and after having provided himself with all
safe conduct, and, feeling easy, and free from anxiety, was
nevertheless unexpectedly apprehended, and brought before the
President, yea, torn asunder with manifold torments, and then
committed to the fire; and thus, thanking the mercy of God for
it, he endured the suffering which he had sought to
escape.""This Rutilius was martyred somewhere in Africa,"
writes <i>A. Mellinus, 1st book</i> of <i>the Hist.,</i> fol
55, col. 1, from <i>Tertullian. de Fuga, in Persecutione,
cap.</i> 5, at the end.</p> 

<h2>MAVILUS, A PIOUS CHRISTIAN OF ADRUMELEN, TORN BY
THE WILD BEASTS, AT CARTHAGE, ABOUT THE YEAR 201</h2> 

<p>Tertullian writes a very candid admonition and warning
concerning the impending wrath of God</p>

</div><div id="128"> 

<p>over all the persecutors of the Christians, to Scapula, the
Governor of Carthage, who, having succeeded in the place of
Vigellius Saturninus (who, on account of the persecution he had
exercised against the Christians, had been struck with
blindness, through the righteous judgment of God), also
followed in his footsteps as regards cruelty. For at his
accession to the Governorship, he immediately very cruelly
sentenced Mavilus, a very pious Christian of Adrumelen, a city
in Africa, to be torn by the beasts; who, though through a
severe death, attained to a blessed end: Immediately after his
death great plagues were sent by the Lord over the city of
Carthage, where the Governor resided; as, great rains, high
floods, terrible thunders, fiery signs in the air, etc.
<i>IdemIbidem, eol. e, ex Tertullian. ad Scapulam, cap.
3.</i></p>

<h2>PERPETUA AND FELICITAS, OF TUBURBI IN
MAURITANIA, AND OTHERS, VIOLENTLY PUT TO DEATH, FOR THE FAITH OF THE SON OF GOD, ABOUT THE YEAR 201 ,</h2> 

<p>Perpetua and Felicitas were two very pious and honorable
Christian women, at Tuburbi, a city in Mauritania, a province
of Africa. Both were very untimely apprehended, to suffer for
the name of Christ, as Felicitas was very far advanced in
pregnancy, and Perpetua had recently given birth to a child,
which she was nursing. But this did not make them fainthearted,
nor so surprise them that they forsook Christ, nor did it
prevent them from going on in the way of godliness; but they
remained equally faithful disciples of Christ, and became
steadfast martyrs.</p>

<p>According to the Roman laws, they waited with the pregnant
woman, until she was delivered, before they sentenced her and
put her to death. When the pains of labor seized her in prison,
and she cried aloud for fear and anguish, the jailer said to
her, "Thou art so much afraid and distressed now, and criest
aloud for pain; how then wilt thou behave, when, tomorrow, or
the day after, thou wilt be led to death?" Felicitas replied
thus, "Now I suffer as a poor woman the punishment which God on
account of sin has laid upon the female sex; but tomorrow I
shall suffer as a Christian woman for the faith and the
confession of Jesus Christ." ,By these words she sufficiently
indicated that she had firmly and immovably founded her faith
upon Christ, who never forsakes His own, even though they be in
the midst of the fire, and are consumed, God also specially
strengthened her, that she might be able to endure her
sufferings. With reference to this, Tertullian says, "Perpetua,
the very strong and steadfast martyr, had a revelation or
vision of the heavenly paradise, on the day of her sufferings,
in the which she saw none but her fellow martyrs. And why no
others? Because the fiery sword which guards the door of
paradise gives way to none but those who die for Christ." In
the meantime these two pious heroines of Jesus Christ were
martyred, that is, they died a violent death, for the name of
their Saviour; for which they will afterwards be crowned with
the unfading wreath of immortality, as a triumpth over the foes
they overcame, namely, the cruelties and pains of death.</p>

<p>The names of their fellow martyrs are Revocatus, Satyrus,
Saturninus, and Serundulus. It is supposed that the
last-mentioned one of these died in prison from extreme
hardship, but that the others were all thrown before the wild
beasts, such as, bulls, lions, bears, leopards, etc., to be
torn by them. Thus these exchanged their dear lives for death,
for Christ's sake. <i>Idem., fol.</i> 26, col. 3, 4, <i>ex
August. in Psal.</i> 74, <i>and de Tempore Barbdrieo, cap. 5,
Beda Usuard. Ado Martirol. Rom.</i> 7. <i>Martii.</i> Also,
<i>1. Pregnatis de Pen. Also, in Antiquo Lectionario. Also,
Tertull. de anima, cap.</i> 5. That the dead bodies of the two
afore-mentioned women were brought to Carthage, and were buried
there is testified to by <i>Victor Uticensis, Pers.
Vandal.,</i> lib. 1.</p>

<h2>LEONIDES, THE FATHER OF ORIGEN, BEHEADED AT ALEXANDRIA, IN EGYPT, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, ABOUT THE YEAR 202</h2> 

<p>Leonides, the father of Origen, was according to the
testimony of Suidas, a bishop of the church of Christ, and also
became a martyr, at Alexandria in Egypt. His imprisonment,
suffering, and death occurred on this wise: When from nearly
all the cities and villages of Egypt and Thebes, Christian
champions, that is, martyrs, were brought, to fight and suffer
for the name of Jesus Christ, Leonides was also one of those
who were brought prisoners to Alexandria, the capital of
Egypt.</p>

<p>When he had been imprisoned for some time, his son Origen,
then but seventeen years old, sent him a very comforting
letter, in which he exhorted him to constancy, writing, among
other things, "Be strong in the Lord, my father, and endure valiantly the
suffering which awaits thee. Let not regard for us induce thee
to do otherwise." He means to say, " (3 father! do not grieve
too much for thy wife, or dear mother, or for us, thy seven
beloved children, of whom I am the oldest; or become so
wavering, that through desire to usward thou shouldest forsake
thy faithful God and Saviour." This was in brief the import of
the letter which Origen wrote to his father. It acted as a
healing medicine in the wounds of the sorrowful mind of his
father, so that he resolved to patiently suffer death for .the
honor of his Saviour. He was finally sentenced to be beheaded,
and all his property was confiscated for the treasury of the
Roman Empire. This happened in the time of Emperor, Severus,
about the year 201. Compare <i>Euseb., lib. 6, cap.</i> 2, with
<i>Abr. Mell., 1st book of the Hist., fol. 57, col. 1, ex
Hieron. Catal. in Orag. Also, P. J. Twisek, Chron., Zd book,
for the year 195, page 51, col. 2. Also, Introduction to the
Martyrs' Mirror, edition</i></p>

</div><div id="129"> 

<p>1631, fol. 38, Col. 2. Also, <i>Joh. Gys. Hist. Mart.,
edition</i> 1657, <i>fol.</i> 3.</p>

<h2>FIVE OF THE DISCIPLES OF ORIGEN, NAMELY,
PLUTARCH, HERACLIDES, HERO, AND TWO OTHER MEN, BOTH CALLED SERENUS, PUT TO DEATH FOR THE FAITH, AT ALEXANDRIA IN EGYPT,
ABOUT THE YEAR 203</h2> 

<p>At this time, Origen, though but eighteen years old, was a
teacher of the faith, at Alexandria, in Egypt, where he taught
with such excellence, not only to begin with Christ, but also
to die with Him, that many of his disciples laid down their
lives for the truth of Christ. Among these are mentioned, by
name, Plutarch, Heraclides, Hero, and two other men, both
called Serenus. Their suffering and death happened in this
manner: Origen, the teacher of these pious people, was in the
habit of going into the prison to the martyrs who suffered for
the name of Jesus Christ, to strengthen them in the faith. Yea,
even when they had already received their sentence of death,
and were making their last defense, he stood by them, and, at
parting, gave them the kiss of peace, as a token of his sincere
love.</p>

<p>When Plutarch, his beloved disciple, was led forth to death,
he, according to his custom, comforted him, for which the
raging multitude would have killed him, had not divine
Providence protected him. This having happened, Plutarch was
put to death for the name of Jesus Christ, and died as a
martyr.</p>

<p>After the death of Plutarch, the first of the two men named
Serenus, was brought forth and burned. His faith, as is stated,
was tried with fire, notwithstanding he was still a catechumen,
that is, one who, though he had been instructed, had not yet
received baptism.</p>

<p>The third of these martyrs is called Heraclides, and of him
the same is stated that is recorded of Serenus, concerning his
faith, namely, that he too was still under instruction, and had
not yet been baptized, but was preparing for it. And thus he
sealed his faith not with water, but with his blood. He was
beheaded with the ax.</p>

<p>The fourth that was put to death for the same faith, was
Hero, who is called a novice in the faith, that is one who had
only lately accepted the faith with baptism. Having commended
his soul into the hands of God, he was likewise beheaded with
the ax.</p>

<p>Besides these four martyrs, there is mentioned a fifth, who
was the second of the aforementioned men named Serenus.
Refusing to apostatize, he, after many severe torments, was
beheaded, like the last-mentioned two; and thus attained to a
blessed end, together with his slain fellow brethren. Compare
<i>Euseb., lib. 6,</i> cap. 4, with <i>Abr. Mell., lst book,
fol.</i> 57, Col. 2, 3. Also, <i>Joh. Gys. Hist.,</i> <i>fol.
18,</i> Col. 3, after Leonides, the father of Origen. Also,
<i>Introduction, fol.</i> 39, Col. <i>1, from Eusebius.</i></p>

<h2>TWO FEMALE DISCIPLES OF ORIGEN, NAMELY, RHAIS AND MARCELLA, BURNED ALIVE AT ALEXANDRIA, FOR THE
FAITH IN JESUS CHRIST, ABOUT THE YEAR 204</h2> 

<p>Among the disciples of Origen, who became martyrs, there are
also mentioned several women as faithful martyrs. However, we
shall only refer to two of these, one called Rhais, the other
Marcella, who suffered their faith and lives to be tried with
fire, like gold that is refined.</p>

<p>Rhais was a catechumen, that is, one that was receiving
instruction preparatory to baptism, and hence, had not yet
sealed her faith with water; however, as Origen himself
declares, she was baptized with fire, that is, burned
alive.</p>

<p>Marcella was the mother of Potamiena (of whom the ancients
speak in such commendatory terms, as having also laid down her
life for the faith; but whom we pass over, on account of
certain remarks which she addressed to Basilides, her
executioner.) After insufferable and dreadful torments, she was
burned by degrees, in great constancy, until she was reduced to
ashes; and thus she exchanged this temporal for an eternal
life. See the above-mentioned authors, as compared with
<i>Mellinus, fol.</i> 57, Col. 4.</p>

<h2>BASILIDES, WHO, FROM AN EXECUTIONER BECAME A CHRISTIAN, BEHEADED FOR THE NAME OF CHRIST, AT ALEXANDRIA, ABOUT THE YEAR 204</h2> 

<p>Not long after the death of Potamiena, who had died with the
above-mentioned Rhais and Marcella, one of the executioners,
named Basilides, who had brought her to death, was converted to
the faith in Christ. Eusebius writes, "Being among his
companions, and an oath being demanded of him on some special
matter, he said, that he dared not swear at all, because he was
a Christian, and did openly confess it before them. When they
heard this, they thought at first, that he was joking; but when
he persistently asserted it, and showed that he was in earnest,
he was seized and cast into prison. When some of the brethren
came to visit him, and inquired how it happened that he had
become changed so suddenly, he fully satisfied them in regard
to the. matter. Having heard this, they gave him the sign of
the Lord, that is (as A. Mellinus explains it), he was baptized
in the name of Christ. The following day he was beheaded for
the confession of the Lord. Compare the preceding accounts
concerning the disciples of Origen, with <i>Eusebius, lib. 6,
cap. 5, fol. 107, cot. 1, 2. Also, A, Mellinus, lst book, fol.
58,</i> Col. <i>1, 2. Also, P. J, Twisck, Chron., 3d book, for
the year 204, fol. 55;</i> Col. <i>2,</i> above. .Also,
<i>Introduction M. Sp., fol. 39;</i> Col. <i>1.</i></p>

</div><div id="130"> 

<h2>IRENEUS, AN ANCIENT TEACHER, AFTER MANY TORMENTS, PUT TO DEATH FOR THE NAME OF JESUS CHRIST, AT LYONS, IN FRANCE, ABOUT THE YEAR 210</h2> 

<p>Ireneus, by descent an Asiatic, was born at Smyrna. In his
youth he attended school, and was a disciple of Polycarp, who
was appointed by the apostle John bishop of the church at
Smyrna, and afterwards became a martyr, as we have already
shown in the proper place. On account of his (Ireneus') special
fitness, he subsequently became bishop of the church at Lyons
in France, in the place of Photinus. His erudition was so
great, that Eusebius extols him more than any of the learned
who lived before and in his time. Tertullian called him"the
most remarkable investigator of all manner of learning." Jerome
said that he was"an apostolic man, who lived next to the time
of the apostles." Epiphanius gave him the title of a"holy and
ancient divine," yea, a"successor of the apostles." In his
ministry he was so faithful a servant in the house of the Lord,
that he had the oversight not only of the church at Lyons,
where he was bishop, and other churches in France, but even of
some churches in Asia and Phrygia.</p>

<p>Concerning his death, the ancient historians have left us
but little information of the time as well as of the manner of
his martyrdom. We find, however, in regard to it the following
words, "That, when the persecution of the Christians, under
Severus, had been instituted in all the countries of the
Romans, the city of Lyons, too, pursuant to the command of the
Emperor, was surrounded with soldiers, and all the Christians
in it put to death with the sword, or beheaded; but that
Ireneus, the shepherd of them all, was sought with special
diligence, and, when found, was put to death with manifold
tortures, and was buried by Zacharia, his elder." <i>Ex actis
Procons. Perditis hoc Tantum extat. Adr. Martyrol.</i> 28
<i>Jun. Abr. Mell., fol.</i> 59, <i>cot. 3, and fol. 60, cot.
1, ex Hieron. Catal, Iren. idem Hieron. epist. 84 ad Magnum,
and</i> 29 <i>ad Theodorum Euseb., lib. 4, cap. 20. Tertull.
lib. Contra Valentin., cap.,5. Hieron. epist.</i> 29. <i>ad
Theodorum and in Catal. Epiph. Haer.</i> 24 <i>and 31.</i>
Also, <i>Joh. Gys.,1657, fol.</i> 18, cot. <i>3, 4.</i> Also,
P. <i>J. Twisck, 3d book, for the year 210,</i> 28th <i>June,
p. 56, cot. 1.</i> He adds these words, "On the 28th of June, A.
D. <i>210,</i> in the fifth persecution, Bishop Irenus (he
means to say: <i>Ireneus)</i> was put to death, together with
many citizens, for the confession of Christ."</p>

<p>He says of the Lord's Supper, "There is something heavenly
and something earthly; the earthly is bread, which is for the
nourishment of the body, and points us to the heavenly, that
is, Christ with His merits, which is the food of the soul."</p>

<p>In the Revelation of John he writes that"antichrist will
arise in the Latin, that is, the Roman church, and will be a
Roman." Also, "Antichrist, who is a thief and apostate, would be
worshiped as God, and, though being but a servant, would be
proclaimed king." From Histor. <i>Georg., lib. 2. hinc. Cal.,
fol. 352. P. P. Cock,</i> fol. <i>59.</i></p>

<h2>HOW SEPTIMIUS FLORENS TERTULLIAN, THROUGH A CERTAIN APOLOGY, DEFENDED THE CHRISTIANS, AND
SOUGHT TO HAVE THEM SPARED, ABOUT THE YEAR <i>204</i></h2> 

<p>When the persecution of the true Christians would not cease,
but increased the longer the more, the pious man Septimius
Florens Tertullian wrote an apology in defense of the
Christians against the heathen, in which he refuted all the
slanders with which they were assailed at that time; showing
that they were innocent, and were persecuted-not on account of
any evil deeds, as the heathen pretended, but simply on account
of their name; and that nevertheless their religion was not
weakened or injured by the bitterness of the persecution, but
much rather helped and strengthened by it.</p>

<p>Among other things he writes, "We are increased, and grow,
when we are mowed down by you. The blood of the Christians is
the seed (of the church). For who is there among you who,
seeing these things, is not constrained to examine what there
may be inside of this matter? Who, having examined it, does not
join them, and, having joined himself to them, does not wish to
suffer with them?"</p>

<p>After this he said these words, or at least words to this
import, "This sect (so he calls the Christians, according to the
view of the heathen) will never perish or be extirpated; which,
rest assured, when it seems to be cut down is built up. For
everyone, seeing their great patience, when they are beaten and
goaded, is incited to inquire into the cause of this; and when
he has come to the knowledge of the truth, he instantly
follows." Compare <i>Joh. Gys., fol.</i> 18, cot. <i>4, ex
Tertulliano, ad Scapulam.</i> Also, P. <i>J. Twisck, 2d book,
for the year 200, page 53,</i> cot. 1, <i>from Chronol. Leonh.,
lib. 1.</i></p>

<h2>CESSATION OF THIS PERSECUTION, UNDER ANTONINUS
CARACALLA AND SEPTIMUS GETA, THE SONS OF SEVERUS, ABOUT THE
YEAR 213</h2> 

<p>Septimus Severus having reigned eighteen years as Roman
Emperor, his sons, Antoninus Caracalla and Septimus Geta,
succeeded him as Emperors. about A. D. 213. These, although
they were very unmerciful, cruel, and bloodthirsty, especially
Caracalla, did not, to any extent, molest the Christians, so
that during their reign very little, indeed, almost no blood of
the Christians was shed in the countries over which their
dominion extended; which continued until about the year 219.
Some write that the cessation of the persecution continued for
about thirty-eight years, during which time, however, Maximin
the Giant greatly vexed many bishops, elders, and deacons,
(that is, the overseers over some churches); but whether they
were punished with death, will be shown in the</p>

</div><div id="131"> 

<p>proper place. However, it is stated, that this fifth
persecution, which had just commenced, did not cease entirely,
though it was a desirable time, as Tertullian writes, when
compared with the preceding severe and very bloody
persecutions. See <i>A. Mell., lst book fol. 60, cot. 1,</i> as
compared with <i>Herod. Sever. Ejusd. Antonin., and Geta
Spartian de Eisdem.</i></p>

<h2>REINSTITUTION OF THIS PERSECUTION, UNDER ALEXANDER SEVERUS, THE SON OF ANTIONINUS AND
MAMMEA, ABOUT THE YEAR 223</h2> 

<p>The followers of Jesus Christ having enjoyed some respite
during this time and a few years previous, the envy and hatred
of some against the Christians increased to such an extent that
even Alexander Severus, who otherwise favored the Christians,
yea, had built them a church, and, according to the manner of
the heathen, had placed Christ among the number of the
so-called gods, commenced a persecution against them, or at
least continued the one begun under Septimus Severus. This was
occasioned principally, as Lactantius Firmianus states, by some
of the Roman jurists, who, through wrong interpretation of the
laws, but especially through a deadly hatred against the
Christians, incited and urged on the Emperor to persecute
them.</p>

<p>Among those who instigated the Emperor, there is chiefly
mentioned Ulpianus, who was not only a senator, but also a
master of requests, and the Emperor's tutor, so that the latter
considered him as his Father; hence the accusations of Ulpianus
against the Christians found the more easily a willing ear with
the Emperor. Lactantius Firma nius calls this Ulpianus and his
adherents murderers, because they made wicked laws against the
godly. He says, "For we read of blasphemous laws and unjust
disputes of the jurists against the Christians."</p>

<p>Domitius, surnamed Ulpianus (mentioned above), in his
seventh book of the office of the Governors of the Roman
provinces, hunted out and collected the edicts and decrees of
the princes, as of Nero, Domitian, Trajan, etc., in order to
send therefrom instructions, how they should punish the
Christians who served and confessed the true God. Thus far,
<i>Lactantius, according to the annotation of Mellinus, in the
lst book, fol. 61, cot. 1, 2, ex Lamprid. Herodian, in Alex.
Severo. Lactana. Firmian. Institut., lib. 5, cap. 11, 12,
19.</i> Also, <i>in Corras., lib. 1, Missel., cap. 10,</i>
although D. P. Pers calls this Emperor a pious and excellent
prince: <i>Roomschen Adelaer,</i> printed 1642, <i>page 154, on
the name Severus Alexander, A.</i> D. <i>224.</i> On the other
hand P. J. Twisck states, that in the beginning of his reign he
was not favorable to the Christians, so that, through
misinformation, he caused some of them to be put to death for
the name of Jesus Christ. <i>Third book, for the year 223, page
60, col. 1, from Chron. Mich., fol. 141, Merula.</i></p>

<h2>AGAPITUS, CALAPODIUS, TIBURTIUS, VALERIANUS, QUIRITIUS, JULIA, CECILIA, MARTINA, AND OTHERS, PUT TO DEATH FOR THE NAME OF CHRIST, ABOUT THE YEAR <i>223</i></h2> 

<p>It is stated that in the last persecution resumed under
Alexandrinus Severus there were put to death among different
other persons, for the name of Jesus Christ and the testimony
of the evangelical truth, Agapitus, a youth of fifteen years;
Calapodius, an elder (of whom P. J. Twisck writes, though two
years earlier than J. Gysius, that he was apprehended for the
doctrine of the Gospel of Jesus Christ, and, refusing to
sacrifice to the heathen gods, was dragged with great ignominy
through the city of Rome, and drowned in the Tiber. <i>3d book,
page 59, cot. 2, from Bergomens, lib. 8.); T</i>iburtius and
Valerianus, two brothers were likewise put to death, as well as
Quiritius and his mother Julia, and Cecilia and Martina, both
of them virgins; all of whom were put to death for the name of
Jesus Christ, either in the water, or in the fire, or by the
sword, or in some other manner. See, <i>Joh. Gys., fol. 19,
cot. 1.</i></p>

<h2>HENRICUS, NARCISSUS, JULIUS, EUSEBIUS, AND OTHERS, PUT TO DEATH FOR THE FAITH, DURING THIS
PERSECUTION</h2> 

<p>Besides those whom we have mentioned as having been slain in
the fifth persecution, Seb. Franck names several very virtuous
believers who suffered and were deprived of life for the same
cause, namely, Henricus, bishop of the church at Lyons;
Narcissus, a patriarch at Jerusalem; Julius and Eusebius.
<i>Sebast. Fra. Keysers Chron. en Wereltlijke Hist. van Christi
geboorte tot op Car. h.,</i> printed <i>1563, fol. 20, cot.
2.</i></p>

<h2>OF THE SIXTH 'PERSECUTION OF THE CHRISTIANS, COMMENCED UNDER MAXIMIN, A. D. <i>237</i></h2> 

<p>The sixth persecution of the Christians, writes J. Gysius,
arose under the Emperor Maximin, a naturally cruel man, and was
directed against persons of respectability (since he was of low
origin), as well as against the Christians, but especially
against the ministers of the Word. Fortunately for the
Christians, this persecution was brief, since he reigned but
two years; and as he was a violent enemy of the ministers of
the church, the persecution commenced on them, as the teachers
and authors, it is said, of the Christian religion; for it was
thought that if they were removed, the common people could
easily be drawn away from it. Then, Origen, a teacher of the
church, in order to exhort the Christians to steadfastness,
wrote a book on martyrdom, dedicating it to Ambrose, overseer
of the church at Milan, and</p>

</div><div id="132"> 

<p>Proctotus, learned men of that time. <i>J. Gys.,
fol. 19, cot. 1, 2, from Euseb., lib. 6, cap. 20, Oros. lib. 7,
cap. 19.</i></p>

<p>Touching the cause of these persecutions, the author of the
<i>Introduction,</i> etc., writes thus: The heathen had such
hatred for the Christians at that time, that, whenever an
earthquake, a storm, or the like, occurred, they laid it to the
charge of the Christians, saying that their gods were offended,
because their honor was waning on account of the Christians;
from which it is to be inferred that they treated the
Christians in an awful manner. <i>Fol. 39, cot. 2, from!
Baronius, in Chron., A. D. 237, num. 3, and A. D. 256, num.
5.</i></p>

 
   <h1>SEVERAL THOUSAND PERSONS BURNED IN THEIR MEETING PLACES FOR THE EVANGELICAL TRUTH, ON DIFFERENT OCCASIONS, BY THE COMMAND OF MAXIMIN, ABOUT THE YEAR 237</h1>

<p>In the new <i>Keysers Chronijk</i> there is related a cruel
and iniquitous deed perpetrated by Emperor Maximin on the
Christians. The author says: The Christians were assembled in
their churches or meeting places, praising their Saviour, when
the Emperor sent forth his soldiers, and had all the churches
or meeting places locked up, and then wood placed around them
and set on fire, in order to burn all the Christians within.
But before the wood was ignited, he caused it to be proclaimed,
that whoever would come out and sacrifice to the god Jupiter,
should be secure of his life, and, moreover, be rewarded by the
Emperor. They replied that they knew nothing of Jupiter; that
Christ was their Lord and God, by the honor of His name, and
calling upon the same they would live and die. It is to be
regarded as a special miracle, that among so many thousand
Christians there was not found one who desired to go out, in
order to save his life by denying Christ; for all remained
together with one accord, singing, and praising Christ, as long
as the smoke and vapor permitted them to use their tongues.
<i>P. J. Twisck, 3d book, page 64, cot. 1, from Chron. Mich.
Sach., fol. 146, Niceph., lib. 7, cap. 6. Hast. Mandri, fol.
10.</i></p>

<h2>ABOUT SIXTY NOTED, PIOUS MARTYRS PUT TO DEATH FOR THE NAME OF JESUS CHRIST, ABOUT THE YEAR <i>239</i></h2> 

<p>In the preceding number of several thousand martyrs who laid
down their lives under Maximin, in the sixth persecution, none
of them are mentioned by name, doubtless because in the
estimation of the world they were mostly lowly and obscure
people; but Sebastian Franck relates from some ancient writers
that about sixty noted martyrs received the crown of martyrdom
under this tyrant; which would be too long to recount.
<i>Chron. des Keysers, fol. 21, cot. 3. 247</i></p>

<h2>ALEXANDER OF JERUSALEM, AFTER MANY TORMENTS, PUT
TO DEATH FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, AT JERUSALEM, AND
OTHERS AT DIFFERENT PLACES, A. D.</h2> 

<p>Alexander of Jerusalem, who was a bishop of the church of
Christ in that place, had to suffer much for the Christian
truth. Eusebius Pamphilius of Cesarea writes, that for
confessing Christ he was brought before the judge, bound with
chains, and cast into prison. And he also writes, that when
they had, time and again, drawn this venerable old man from the
prison to the tribunal, and from the tribunal back to his
chains, he continually, in his suffering and pain, thanked God,
and finally, through unspeakable torments, offered up his
spirit. <i>Histor. Eccles., lib. 6, cap. 29.</i></p>

<p>P. J. Twisck fixes this occurrence in the year <i>247,</i>
and adds these words, "About this time there were many martyrs
in Alexandria, Judea, at Cesarea, Antioch, and elsewhere, who
testified to the Christian faith with their blood and death."
<i>Third book, page 66, cot. 1, from Euseb. Also, Hist. Adri.,
fol. 32, Jan. Cresp., fol. 48.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-Although it is stated that the aforementioned
Alexander was put to death after the seven years' reign of
Philippus, by the Emperor Decius, A. D. <i>247,</i> we have
nevertheless included him in the sixth persecution, since he,
as it appears, was apprehended long before the commencement of
the seventh general persecution, which did not begin until A.
D. <i>251,</i> and was in full force in <i>253.</i></p>

<h2>OF THE SEVENTH PERSECUTION OF THE CHRISTIANS,
UNDER DECIUS, BEGUN ABOUT THE YEAR <i>251</i></h2> 

<p>Sebastian Frank, P. J. Twisck, and Job. Gysius place the
beginning of this persecution under Decius in A. D. <i>251,</i>
while Abraham Mellinus and the author of the <i>Introduction to
the Martyrs' Mirror</i> begin it with the year <i>253;</i>
which difference can easily be reconciled in this manner:
namely, that the decrees against the Christians were sent out
and published about the year <i>251,</i> but that they were not
actually put in force until about A. D. <i>253.</i> Compare
<i>Seb. Frank, etc., fol. 21, cot. 3,</i> with <i>P. J. Twisck,
3d book, page 67, cot. 2.</i> Also, <i>Joh. Gys., fol. 19, cot.
2. Also, A. Mell., 1st book, fol. 65, cot. 4. Also,
Introduction, fol. 40, cot. 1.</i></p>

<h2>OF THE CRUELTY AND MISERY OF THIS PERSECUTION</h2> 

<p>P. J. Twisck, after narrating something in commendation of
this Emperor, begins immediately to give an account of 'the
tyranny which he employed against the Christians, saying, "He
caused public mandates and decrees to be issued and posted up,
that if they would not apostatize from Christ, to persecute the
Christians everywhere, and to execute them without mercy with
every. kind of torture</p>

</div><div id="133"> <br />
 

<p>that could be devised. The torments with which the poor
Christians were put to death in that day were very severe, as
we may read in Dionysius, Gregory, Cyprian, Eusebius,
Vincentius, and others. They were exiled, spoiled of their
goods, sentenced to the mines, scourged, beaten. Beheading and
hanging were. thought far too insignificant, yea, no punishment
at all for them. Hot tar was most invariably poured over them,
roasted at a slow fire, stoned, pricked in the face, eyes, and
the whole body with sharp .pointed instruments, dragged through
the streets over hard pebbles and rough stones, dashed against
rocks, cast down from steep places, their limbs broken in
pieces, torn asunder with hooks, rolled about on sharp
potsherds, given as a prey and food to the wild beasts, stakes
driven through their loins, etc.</p>

<p>There was scarcely a place where persecution was not in
vogue; Africa, and Alexandria especially could be called the
school of the martyrs. In short, Nicephorus says in his 5th
book, chap. 29, that to count the martyrs of this time would be
as easy as to undertake to count the sands of the seashore.
See, P. J. <i>Tzefisck, 3d book, for the year 251, p. 67, cot.
2, and page 68, cot. 1, from Euseb., lib. 7, cap.</i> <i>1.
Chron. Mich., fol. 154. Chron. Carionis, lib. 3. Seb. Fr., fol.
17 Hist Andrw, fol. 177, 2d part, fol. 174. Paul Merul., fol.
212-214. Leonh. Krentz. Chronologiae, fol. 16, 17. Chron. Car.,
fol. 236. Jan Crespin.,</i> fol. 53.</p>

<p>We shall begin with the persecution which at this time took
place at Alexandria against the pious and defenseless
Christians; for which reason this place was called by the
ancients the"Scaffold of all tyranny."</p>

<h2>METRAS, A GOD-FEARING OLD MAN, PIERCED WITH REEDS, AND STONED TO DEATH, FOR THE NAME OF JESUS CHRIST, AT ALEXANDRIA, A. D. 252</h2> 

<p>Metras, also called Metranus, a God-fearing old man, was now
apprehended by the riotous people at Alexandria, and commanded
to utter blasphemous words against God; that is, to blaspheme
the name of God, and to forsake the Saviour, Jesus. But as he
refused to do so, they beat him on his whole body with sticks,
pricked and pierced his face and eyes with sharp reeds, and,
martyred thus, led him out of the city, and stoned him to death
in</p>

</div><div id="134"> 

<p>the suburbs. <i>Euseb., lib. 6, cap. 41, fol. 122, letter O,
taken from the letter of Dionys. Alexandrinus to Fabian,
concerning the martyrs in Alexandria.</i> Compared with A.
<i>Mell., 1st book, fol. 67, col. 1. Also, Joh. Gys., fol. 19,
col. 4. Also, Introduction, fol. 40, col. 1.</i></p>

<h2>COINTHA, A BELIEVING WOMAN, DRAGGED THROUGH THE STREETS OF ALEXANDRIA, AND STONED FOR THE TESTIMONY OF THE SON OF GOD, A. D. <i>252</i></h2> 

<p>Afterwards, an honorable believing woman, called Cointha,
or, as others call her, Quinta, was seized and brought into a
temple of idols, and placed before these, in order to compel
her to worship them. But when she recoiled with abhorrence from
the idols, they tied her feet together, and dragged her through
all the streets of the city of Alexandria, beat her with rods,
and as some writers have recorded, rubbed her naked body
against mill-stones. When they had dragged, beaten, and rubbed
her long enough, so that her body was completely lacerated,
they at last dragged her into the suburbs, and there pelted her
with stones until she was covered with them. Compare
<i>Euseb.</i> with <i>Abr. Mell.</i> and loh. Gys. in the
places referred to above concerning the martyr Metras.</p>

<h2>APOLLONIA, AN AGED VIRGIN, AFTER MANY TORMENTS
BURNED ALIVE FOR THE EVANGELICAL TRUTH, AT ALEXANDRIA, A. D. <i>252</i></h2> 

<p>Apollonia was an aged virgin, whom the enemies of the truth
apprehended, and with their fists and blows in the face,
knocked every tooth out of her head. In the meantime a large
fire of wood was kindled, and they threatened to burn her
alive, if she would not worship the gods, and forsake Christ.
But notwithstanding this miserable death, she would rather go
into the fire, .and lose her temporal life, than save it by
abandoning Christ and losing her soul.</p>

<p>Touching the manner of her death, and her great willingness
to die, <i>A.</i> Mellinus makes this statement, "This virgin
was sentenced to be burned, or to blaspheme the name of Christ;
but as she abhorred the latter, she wished to show that she was
ready and willing to die for Christ." See <i>Eusebius,
Mellinus,</i> and Gysius, in the books and on the pages
referred to in connection with the martyrdom of Metras and
Cointha.</p>

<h2>SERAPION OF EPHESUS, A PIOUS MAN, TORN LIMB FROM LIMB, THROWN OUT OF THE WINDOW, AND KILLED, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, AT ALEXANDRIA, A. D. <i>252</i></h2> 

<p>As the afore-mentioned bloodthirstiness of the heathen at
Alexandria did not abate, but increased more and more, against
those who confessed the name of Jesus Christ, it came to pass
that they laid their hands on a pious Christian, called
Serapion, an Ephesian by birth. They dragged him out of his
house, tore him almost limb from limb, and finally threw him
out of a window; in consequence of which, after many torments,
and having commended his soul to God, he tasted death, and thus
was counted among the number of the steadfast and blessed
martyrs. <i>See the books cited above.</i></p>

<h2>JULIAN, AN OLD MAN, WITH HIS FRIEND EUNUS, LED ABOUT SEATED ON CAMELS, SEVERELY SCOURGED, AND FINALLY BURNED ALIVE, AT ALEXANDRIA, ABOUT A. D. <i>253</i></h2> 

<p>There was at this time and place also an old man, who, on
account of great pain caused by gout, could not walk, but had
to be carried. His name was Julian, and the ancients greeted
him as a very venerable man, on account of his virtue. In
pursuance of the imperial decree published against the
Christians, he was brought by two carriers before the judge, to
give an account of his faith.</p>

<p>Forthwith one of those who had carried him, fearing the
severe examination, or the rack, apostatized from the faith;
for which reason we deem his name unworthy of a place here; but
the other, called Eunus, continued very constant in the faith,
together with the old man Julian, who was his dear friend;
hence both made a grand confession of it; notwithstanding their
many severe torments.</p>

<p>Both were then seated naked upon camels, and led about the
whole city of Alexandria, which is very large; scourged with
many severe stripes, and finally brought before a great,
high-flaming fire, into which both were cast, and burned alive,
in the sight of a great multitude of people that stood about.
Compare <i>Euseb., lib. 5, cap. 31, fol. 123, col. 1, letter
B., from the letter of Dionys. to Fabius, bishop of
Antioch.</i> Also, <i>A. Mell., fol. 67, col. 4.</i> Also, Joh.
Gys., fol. <i>20, col.1.</i></p>

<h2>MACAR, EPIMACHUS, AND ALEXANDER, AFTER MANY TORMENTS, BURNED ALIVE, AT ALEX ANDRIA, ABOUT THE YEAR <i>253</i></h2> 

<p>There was yet another pious Christian, called Macar, or
Macarius, a native of Lybia, whom the judge advised with many
words, to forsake Christ; but he continued only the more
steadfastly to confess his faith. Finally the judge commanded
that he should be burned alive; which was done.</p>

<p>Epimachus and Alexander did not remain prisoners very long
after Macar's death; but, after suffering much pain, having
been cut and slashed with razors, lacerated with scourges, and
wounded on the most sensitive parts of their bodies, they were
finally burned alive with flaming fire. <i>See the authors
cited above.</i></p>

</div><div id="135"> 

<h2>FOUR GOD-FEARING WOMEN, NAMELY, TWO CALLED AMMONARIA, AND MERCURIA AND DIONYSIA, BEHEADED AT ALEXANDRIA FOR THE CONFESSION OF JESUS CHRIST, ABOUT THE YEAR <i>253</i></h2> 

<p>At this time, God also wonderfully manifested His power in
certain women, among whom four are mentioned by name, two
called Ammonaria, and Mercuria and Dionysia. The last named two
were aged women, one of them being the mother of many children,
all of whom she nevertheless had forsaken, for Christ's sake.
The other two, as it appears, were unmarried persons or young
maidens, who loved their heavenly bridegroom, Jesus Christ, too
much, to look for an earthly one. Of all these it is stated
that they remained so steadfast in the confession of Jesus
Christ, that the judge felt ashamed on this account, and, in
order to put an end to the matter had them beheaded. <i>See the
authors and books cited above.</i> Also, A. <i>Melt., fol. 68,
cot. 1.</i></p>

<h2>HERON, ATER, AND ISIDORE, BURNED FOR THE FAITH; AND DIOSCORUS, A YOUTH OF FIFTEEN YEARS SET FREE AFTER HAVING BEEN GREATLY TORMENTED; AT ALEXANDRIA, ABOUT THE YEAR 253</h2> 

<p>Heron, Ater, and Isidore, Egyptians by birth, and a youth of
fifteen years, called Dioscorus, were committed to the. Judge
of Alexandria, at the same time. The judge examined the youth
first, supposing it a very easy matter to persuade him, or
deceive him by fair words, or, if not on this wise, to move him
by torments (of which, as Eusebius says, many were inflicted
upon him), to deny the Christian faith. But this excellent
youth, Dioscorus, could be induced neither by fair words nor by
the force of torments, to obey the judge.</p>

<p>The three men, namely Heron, Ater, and Isidore, the judge
had most cruelly scourged, and examined with all manner of
stripes, intending to draw them away from the faith; but when
he saw that because of their faith in Jesus Christ they
valiantly endured all the torments, he delivered them to the
executioners to be burned alive; except the youth Dioscorus,
whom he released, on account of his courage as well as the
astonishingly discreet answers which he gave to every one of
his questions; saying that in consideration of his youth he
would wink at his perverseness for the present, so that, in the
meantime he might reflect upon the matter, and repent. But the
ancient writers state, that, coming to the church of Jesus
Christ, God ordained him to be a bulwark and consolation of His
people; awaiting a longer and severer conflict, and a greater
and fuller reward; on account of which, as well as because of
his previous sufferings, he was reckoned among the pious
martyrs. <i>See the above-mentioned authors and books.</i></p>

<h2>NEMESIUS, A PIOUS CHRISTIAN, BURNED FOR HIS FAITH IN JESUS CHRIST, TOGETHER WITH SEVERAL MALEFACTORS, AT ALEXANDRIA, ABOUT THE YEAR <i>253</i></h2> 

<p>The malignity of the tyrants had now become so great that
they called the defenseless lambs of Christ murderers, and
sought to put them to death under this name. Among those thus
accused was a pious follower of Christ, called Nemesius, or,
also, Nemesis, who, being accused of the same crime, first of
all candidly and clearly vindicated himself from it. Thereupon
his accuser charged him with being a Christian, and, therefore,
nevertheless guilty. of death. Eusebius writes, that in this
point the judge observed no moderation, but caused him first to
be tortured with twofold torments, and then commanded that he
should be burned with the murderers, unconscious of the fact
that through his cruelty he made this holy martyr resemble our
Saviour, who, for the salvation of mankind, was crucified
between murderers. In regard to this, A. Mellinus says, "The
judge made this martyr like unto his .Lord Christ, and,
according to his example, had him placed between highwaymen,
and then burned alive." A. <i>Melt., 1st book,</i> fol. <i>68,
cot. 2,</i> from <i>Euseb., lib. 6, cap. 41.</i> Also, P.
<i>.l. Twisck, 3d book, for the year 252, page 70, cot. 1, on
the name Nemesion.</i></p>

<h2>BABYLAS, BISHOP OF THE CHURCH AT ANTIOCH, AND THREE YOUTHS, URBAN, PHILIDIAN, AND EPOLONIUS, BEHEADED AT ANTIOCH, FOR THE NAME OF JESUS CHRIST, ABOUT THE YEAR <i>254</i></h2> 

<p>Biabylas, bishop of the church of Antioch, the capital of
Syria, situated on the river Orontes, was a very godly and
faithful shepherd of the flock of Christ. Knowing beforehand
that this severe persecution was threatening the church of
Christ, he very diligently instructed not only men and women,
but also children in the principles of the Christian faith, and
constantly admonished them in his preaching, not only to
believe in Christ, but also to suffer for His name. Touching
the cause of his imprisonment, the ancients have briefly
described it thus: namely, that the Emperor Decius came to one
of the congregations of the Christians, and requested to be
admitted; but that the shepherd of that congregation or church,
namely Babylas, in order to spare the congregations, opposed
him boldly, saying, that it was not lawful for him thus
audaciously to enter the house of the living God, and to view
the mysteries of the Lord with his polluted eyes, or to .touch
them with his murderous hands still covered with blood. The
Emperor, unable to bear this, had Babylas, together with
several others, seized, bound with chains, and placed in severe
confinement.</p>

<p>Those who were apprehended with him, and were finally put to
death, were, as appears from the</p>

</div><div id="136"> 

<p>records, three young men, brothers, and were called, Urban,
Philidian, and Epolonius; who, as some suppose, were his
bodily, but according to others, his spiritual children,
because he had won them for Christ through the doctrine of the
truth.</p>

<p>When the hour of his departure began to draw near, that he
was to be offered, and his disciples or other good friends came
to visit him in prison, he earnestly ,asked, as a last request
of them, to bury him with his fetters, chains, and bonds.</p>

<p>Concerning his death, Eusebius Pamphilius writes, "Bishop
Babylas fell asleep in the Lord, in prison, at Antioch, after
having made his confession, in all things like Alexander."
<i>Hist. Eccl. Edit. A. D. 1588, lib. 6, cap. 39, fol. 121,
letters F, G.</i></p>

<p>But as all the other fathers who have written of Babylas
speak of him as a martyr, they also state that he was executed
with the sword. The records of his death, faithfully collected
by Suidas and others from the most ancient writers, read
thus, "When Babylas was sentenced by the Emperor Decius to be
beheaded, together with the aforementioned three young men, he
sang the comforting words of the 116th psalm, on his way to the
place of execution: 'Return unto thy rest, O! my soul; for the
Lord hath dealt bountifully with thee. He hath delivered my
soul from death, mine eyes from tears, and my feet from
falling. I will walk before the Lord in the land of the
living."'</p>

<p>When Babylas and the three young men had arrived at the
place where they were to be beheaded, Babylas begged, that they
would first put to death before his eyes, the three youths
(whether they were his bodily or his spiritual children) so
that they might not be deterred or discouraged by his death
from dying for the name of Christ.</p>

<p>While the executioners were busy executing the children, he
prayed to the Lord, saying, "Here am I, Lord, and the children
whom thou hast given me." And thus he encouraged the children,
steadfastly to suffer for the Lord.</p>

<p>After this, Babylas also fell asleep very peacefully in the
Lord, having commended his soul into the hands of the Lord, to
bring it to the eternal rest of which he had spoken immediately
before his death.</p>

<p>The mother of these children, and the brethren of the church
of Antioch buried the dead bodies of these martyrs in a decent
manner, together with the chains and fetters with which Babylas
had been bound during his life.</p>

<p>Thus, this good father and his dear children took an
honorable departure from this world together on the same day,
and are awaiting now the blessed hope and the revelation of the
great God, and their Saviour, Jesus Christ, for whose honor and
glory they suffered these things. <i>Abr. Mell., 1st book, fol.
68,</i> Col. <i>4, and fol. 69,</i> Col. <i>1, 2, from Euseb.,
lib. 6, cap. 29. Epicent;han. lib. de Mens. and Pond. Hieron.
Catal. in Origene. Chrysost. Eunt. Gent. and Homed. 9 ad Ephes.
Suidas in Babyla.</i>acta ex Patribus Collecta. Suid in Hist.
sub. nom. Babylm.</p>

<p>NOTE.-P. J. Twisck, who begins this persecution by Decius,
with the year <i>251,</i> fixes the death of this man, Babylas,
in the second year of his reign, namely, A. D. <i>252. Chron.
3d book, Q. 70,</i> Col. <i>1, from Hist. Andr., fol. 21.</i>
But Abr. Mellinus, who begins the persecution with the year
<i>253,</i> fixes his death in A. D. <i>254,</i> (although the
printer has erroneously made it A. D. <i>264;</i> for Decius
reigned only two years), and this is consequently the second
year of Decius. We have followed the latter author.</p>

<h2>PIONIUS, BISHOP OF THE CHURCH AT SMYRNA, NAILED TO A PIECE OF WOOD AND BURNED ALIVE, IN THE CITY OF SMYRNA, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, A. D. 254</h2> 

<p>Mention is made in this time of a certain pious Christian,
called Pionius, a man greatly noted on account of his
remarkable virtue, who always stood fearlessly before the
judges, and, as Eusebius declares, steadfastly replied to all
their questions, yea, taught and disputed in the court, so that
those who wavered on account of the persecution, were thereby
strengthened and encouraged. While in prison, he strengthened
the brethren, and encouraged them, to fight steadfastly even
unto the end, in the faith, for the Lord, in which he preceded
them as a good leader. For, according to the testimony of
Eusebius, he was finally nailed on a piece of wood, and cast
into a flaming fire, and thus died a blessed death. <i>Euseb.,
lib. 4, cap. 15,</i> taken from the letter of those of Smyrna,
concerning the death of Polycarp and some of the martyrs who
followed him.</p>

<h2>FURTHER PARTICULARS CONCERNING THE DEATH OF PIONIUS, ACCORDING TO THE ACCOUNTS GIVEN BY DIFFERENT AUTHORS</h2> 

<p>We shall endeavor to be as brief as possible, and, instead
of relating all that pertains to this, present only the last
acts of his death.</p>

<p>When the Governor, after much had been said on both sides,
said to Pionius, "Why dost thou make such great haste to meet
death?" Pionius answered, "I do not make haste to meet
<i>death,</i> but <i>life."</i> Then said the Governor, "Thou
dost not act wisely thus to hasten to meet death. Thou art like
those who, despising death, for the sake of a little gain offer
themselves to fight with the beasts. But since thou despisest
death so much, thou shalt be burned alive."</p>

<p>This sentence of death was read to him from a tablet
inscribed with Roman letters, "We have sentenced Pionius to be
burned alive, because he has confessed that he is a
Christian."</p>

<p>Having thus been sentenced, Pionius was brought to the place
where he was to be burned. There he divested himself of his
clothes, and,</p>

</div><div id="137"> 

<p>having looked at his naked body, he cast up his eyes to
heaven, praising and thanking God for having kept him to this
hour free and unspotted from the idols.</p>

<p>With this, he voluntarily went and lay down on the firewood,
stretched himself over it, and delivered himself to the
soldiers, to be nailed to the wood.</p>

<p>When he was fastened to the wood, the servant said to
him, "Be converted and alter your views; and we shall remove the
nails." Pionius answered, "I feel that they are in already." And reflecting a little,
he said to God, "Therefore, O Lord, do I hasten to death, that I
may rise the sooner (or the more glorious)."</p>

<p>Having been nailed on the cross, he was raised up with his
face towards the east. When a great heap of wood had been
collected with which to burn him, he closed his eyes for some
time, so that the people thought that he had already died.
However, he prayed secretly in his heart; for when he had
finished his prayer, he opened his eyes, and all at once the
flame shot up to a great height, just as with a glad
countenance he uttered the last word of his trust,
saying, "Amen, O Lord, receive my soul," and calmly and without
manifesting the least sign of pain, he gave his spirit over
into the hands of God.</p>

<p>This happened when Julius Proculus Quintilianus was
Proconsul of Asia, and Emperor M. Q. T. Decius was Consul for
the third, and Gratus for the second time, at Rome, in A. D.
254, by virtue of the seventh persecution under Emperor Decius,
at Smyrna, in Asia Minor. <i>Abr. Mell., 1st book,</i> fol. 71,
col. 3, 4, <i>from Euseb., lib.</i> 4. Also, <i>Acta per Sym.
Metaph. Genuma,</i> and <i>here pro</i> Consularia.</p>

<h2>MAXIMUS, A PIOUS CHRISTIAN, AFTER MANY TORMENTS
STONED TO DEATH, AT EPHESUS, ABOUT THE YEAR 255</h2> 

<p>It is stated that shortly after the death of Pionius and the
preceding martyrs, there suffered a certain pious Christian,
called Maximus, a citizen of Ephesus; concerning whom, we, in
order to present the matter in the briefest, clearest and
plainest manner, shall, (instead of the testimony of the
fathers) copy the records themselves, which were approved by
the Proconsul, and written by the clerk of the court. They read
thus, "Maximus, a citizen of Ephesus, having been apprehended
and brought before Optimus, the Proconsul of Asia, the latter
asked him: 'What is thy name?', "He answered: 'My name is Maximus.', "The Proconsul asked: 'What is thy estate?' which meant,
whether he was free-born, or a servant., "Maximus said: 'I belong to myself, and am free-born.
Nevertheless, I am a servant of Christ, and manage my own
affairs.', "The Proconsul said: 'Art thou a Christian?'"Maximus
replied: 'Notwithstanding I am a sinner, I am nevertheless a
servant of Christ.', "The Proconsul questioned: 'Knowest thou not the decrees of
the invincible Princes, which have now been brought
hither?', "Maximus asked back: 'What are they?', "The Proconsul answered: 'That all the Christians are to
forsake their superstitions, acknowledge the only true Prince,
to whose power all things are subject, and worship his
gods.', "Maximus said: 'Yea, I have heard the unjust decree of this
Prince or Emperor, and hence have come, openly to declare
myself against it.', "The Proconsul spoke: 'Then sacrifice to the gods.', "Maximus said: 'I sacrifice to none, except to God; and I
rejoice that from my childhood's days I have offered myself
only to God.', "The Proconsul again said: 'Sacrifice, lest I cause thee to
be tormented in divers manners.', "Maximus said: 'This is just what I have always longed for:
to be deprived of this temporal and frail life, and thereby
attain life eternal.', "The Proconsul then commanded his soldiers to beat Maximus
with sticks. While he was being beaten, the Proconsul said to
him: 'Sacrifice, Maximus, that you may be released from these
torments.', "Maximus said: 'These torments, which I gladly and willingly
receive for the name of my Lord Jesus Christ, are no torments
at all; but if I apostatize from Christ, I must expect the real
and everlasting torments.', "The Proconsul therefore had him suspended on the
torture-stake, and dreadfully tormented; and said to him: 'See,
now, where thou hast come to by thy folly; sacrifice,
therefore, that thou mayest save thy life.', "Maximus replied: 'If I sacrifice not, I shall save my life;
but if I do, I shall lose it. For neither thy sticks, hooks,
claws, pincers, nor thy fire hurt me; nor do I feel any pain
through it, because the grace of Christ abides in me.', "Then the proconsul pronounced the sentence of death, which
was as follows: 'I command, that Maximus be stoned to death, as
an example and terror to other Christians; because he would not
submit to the laws, and sacrifice to the great Diana of
Ephesus! Acta Proconsuluria." Thus far extend the words which
the clerk of the court himself wrote.</p>

<p>The Christian who copied these records, adds the
following, "And presently this faithful champion of Christ was
taken away by the servants of Satan, brought without the city
walls, and stoned. While he was being led away, and stoned, he
thanked God with all his heart, who had made him worthy to
overcome the devil in the conflict; and thus committed his soul
into the hands of his Lord Jesus Christ."</p>

<p>Thus this pious witness of Jesus laid down his life amidst a
volley of stones, for the honor of his</p>

</div><div id="138"> 

<p>Saviour, and thus was registered among the holy and
steadfast martyrs. A. <i>Melt., 1st book, fol 72, cot. 3, 4,
from Acta Procons. Also, Aug., lib. 2, de Doctr. Christ., cap.
26, Idem. contra Donatist. super alia acta citat.</i></p>

<h2>ORIGEN, A SON OF LEONIDES THE MARTYR, GREATLY TORMENTED AT ALEXANDRIA, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF
JESUS CHRIST, AND BANISHED TO CESAREA STATONIS, ABOUT THE YEAR <i>254</i></h2> 

<p>In our account of baptism in the third century, with special
reference to the year <i>231,</i> we have spoken of the views
of Origen and shown that he has left us very excellent and
salutary teachings concerning baptism upon faith; and also,
that in his teaching he opposed the swearing of oaths, war,
compulsory celibacy, the literal view of the Lord's Supper,
those who taught something, and did not practice it themselves,
the antichrist, etc.</p>

<p>We have likewise shown there, that some very peculiar things
were laid to his charge as his views, from which, however, the
principal ancient writers, as well as later authors, have
vindicated him; all of which may be examined at the place
indicated, and considered with Christian discretion. This we
leave to the judgment of the judicious. We shall therefore
proceed to treat of his martyrdom, and how much he had to
suffer for the name of the Lord Jesus.</p>

<p>From the very beginning of his knowledge he placed himself
in great danger of being apprehended or put to death for the
testimony of the Son of God. For when he was but seventeen
years old, and his father, whom he affectionately loved, had
been apprehended for the Christian religion, and had nothing to
expect but death (as we have noted for the year <i>202),</i> he
did not only comfort him by letter, but, as other writers
state, desired to follow him into prison, yea even unto death;
which he would have done, had not his mother prevented it by
withholding or taking away his clothes. <i>Introduction, fol.
38, cot. 2, from Euseb.</i></p>

<p>Besides this he often exposed himself to danger for the
Christian martyrs, because of his extraordinary love for them.
He would station himself near the tribunal, where the
apprehended Christians were making their last defense, or were
to receive their sentence of death, and when they were becoming
weak he would strengthen and encourage them; he went with them
to death, even to the place of execution; he gave them the last
kiss of peace, as a friendly and fraternal farewell; so that
frequently he would have lost his life, had not God remarkably
and miraculously preserved him. Soldiers who were hired for the
purpose by the enemies of the truth, lay in ambush for his
person and for the house in which he lived, in order to
apprehend or kill him; so that on account of the fierce
persecution he could remain no longer in Alexandria, the place
where he had been brought up; and this the more, because the
believers there, on account of his conspicuousness, could no
longer conceal him.</p>

<p>His beloved disciples, whom he had faithfully taught the
ways of God, had nearly all been put to death for the name of
Jesus Christ, among whom were, Plutarch, Heraclides, Hero, the
two pious men called Serenus, Rhais, Marcella, and others; whom
we have mentioned in the years A. D. <i>203</i> and
<i>204.</i></p>

<p>It may therefore be considered a miracle that Origenes lived
so long in the midst of deadly persecutions, namely, from his
seventh to his seventieth year, which is more than fifty
years.</p>

<p>But finally, sufferings beyond measure came upon him; he was
cast into the deepest prison, his neck loaded with iron chains,
his feet placed in the stocks, and stretched so that four holes
were between them.* There he was tortured with fire and divers
other means of torment; but he bore it all with utmost
patience. Nevertheless, it appears from ancient writers, that
he was not put to death judicially, but, as Epiphanius writes,
was banished to Cesarea Statonis; and that finally, having
moved to Tyre, he died and was buried there, under Gallus and
Valusianus. Compare the account of <i>A. Melt., 1st book, fol.
57, cot. 1, 2, under the name Leonides,</i> but especially
<i>fol. 77, cot. 3, 4, -under the name Origen, from Euseb.,
lib. 6, cap. 2. Hieron. Apol. Rufin. Suid. in Origene
Ecent;iphan. de Mensuris. Hieron. Catal. in Origene.</i> Also,
<i>Euseb., lib. 6. Also, P. J. Twisck, 3d book, for the year
231, page 61, cot. 1, 2,</i> from <i>Georgius hicelius. Also,
Introduction, fol. 38, cot. 2. Also, Joh. Gys., fol. 18, cot.
3, about Leonides.</i></p>

<p>There are some who accuse Origen of apostasy; but different
excellent authors have acquitted him of this charge; though in
point of knowledge he had his weaknesses and failings.</p>

<p>Eusebius Pamphilius of Cesarea praises his virtue above
measure, saying -that Origen wished to have no communion with
<i>Paulus Antiochenus,</i> because the latter was tainted with
error. Of Origen it was said, "This is he who lives as he
teaches, and teaches as he lives. He sold his books of heathen
philosophy, on condition that four pence a day should be given
him for his daily needs, so that he would not be a burden to
any one. He set all his disciples an example of poverty, that
they should forsake whatever they possessed; hence he was
beloved by everyone, because he contended with none about
temporal goods, except that some were dissatisfied because he
refused to accept what they offered to impart to him for the
sustenance of his body." Eusebius further says, "It is said that
for many years he went barefoot, using neither wine nor such
like, but only the absolute necessaries of life, until disease
in the breast, which endangered his life, compelled him to it."
<i>Lib. 6,</i></p>

<br /><cite>* The number of holes reached indicated the
degree of torture to which the prisoner was
subjected.-Translator.</cite> 

</div><div id="139"> 

<p class="c8">cap. 1, 2, 3. Also, Baudart. in Apophthegm.
Christian., lib. 3, page 100.</p>

<p>In refutation of those who accused Origen of apostasy, A.
Mellinus writes (though he does not wish to defend his
misconceptions or errors, as he calls them), "If this account of
the apostasy of Origen were true, Porphyrius, who wrote at this
time against the Christians, and was especially bitter against
Origen, would very probably have mentioned it in his writings,
and this the more so, as he dared unjustly to accuse Ammonius,
Origen's teacher, of Apostasy: how much more then, would he
have exerted himself against Origen, if the latter had really
apostatized; whereas he acknowledges that Origen lived as a
Christian to the end." A little further on he writes, "As
regards his Christian life and steadfast confession of the name
of Christ, we have no reason to call it in question, since even
his enemies bear him a good testimony in this respect." <i>Abr.
Mell., 1st book, fol. 78,</i> Col. <i>1, from.
Porphyry.</i></p>

 
<h1>OF THE EIGHTH PERSECUTION OF THE CHRISTIANS,
UNDER VALERIAN AND HIS SON GALLIEN, WHICH COMMENCED ABOUT
THE YEAR 259</h1>

<p>After the death of the Emperor Volusian, the son of Decius,
Aemilian, an Ethiopian, ascended the imperial throne; but since
it is stated that he reigned only three months, and that
Valerian had previously already been declared Emperor, his
reign is not taken into account. It follows, therefore, that
Valerian was acknowledged Emperor; who, together with his son
Gallien, began to reign about the year <i>255,</i> as set forth
by Seb. Frank; but the persecution, according to the testimony
of different authors, did not begin until the year
<i>259.</i></p>

<h2>OF THE ORIGINATOR AND THE CAUSE OF THIS PERSECUTION</h2> 

<p>The author of the <i>Introduction to the Martyrs Mirror</i>
writes, concerning this, as follows, "In A. D. <i>259</i> the
eighth persecution against the Christians arose under the
Emperor Valerian. He issued an edict against the Christians, in
which he commanded that the Christians were not to assemble
themselves; and as this was not observed, a great persecution
arose everywhere." <i>Fol. 41,</i> Col. 1.</p>

<h2>FURTHER PARTICULARS ABOUT THE ORIGINATOR AND CAUSE OF THIS PERSECUTION</h2> 

<p>Concerning this, J. Gysius records the following, "Valerian
and Gallien, who in the beginning of their reign, were
favorable to the Christians, soon afterwards changed their
course, being misled by an Egyptian sorcerer, and by divers
torments compelled the Christians to idolatry." <i>Fol. 20,</i>
Col. <i>3, 4.</i></p>

<h2>FURTHER AMPLIFICATION OF THE CAUSE AND
CIRCUMSTANCES OF THIS PERSECUTION</h2> 

<p>P. J. Twisck, speaking (for the year <i>255)</i> of the
beginning of the reign of Emperor Valerian, says, "Truly, this Emperor, as history tells us, was in the
beginning a very pious and praiseworthy Prince, a censor, who
excelled all others; in regard to which many commendatory
passages may be read in the <i>Tijdthresoor</i> by Paul
<i>Merula.</i> But, what of it? Although at first he was very
favorable to the Christians, and so honored their ministers,
that his house was considered a church of the Lord, he was
nevertheless afterwards corrupted by a doctor, a wicked lord
and prince of all the sorcerers of Egypt; who made the Emperor
believe that fortune would not be on his side as long as he
tolerated the Christians at his court, or in the land. Then the
Emperor commanded that these holy and just men should be
persecuted and put to death as such who were opposed to the
sorcery with which he was polluted.</p>

<p>This sorcerer also prevailed upon the Emperor to slaughter
and sacrifice children and human beings in honor of the devil.
He accordingly commanded that little children should be put to
death, so that he could perform his unclean ceremonies and
abominable sacrifices; and thus robbed parents of their
children, and became such a despiser and oppressor of the
Christian faith, that he, spared neither old nor young, men nor
women, nor any state and condition, but most miserably murdered
all that were brought to him, in Alexandria and other places
too numerous to mention. At Rome also there was much innocent
blood shed at this time, even as this city has ever been a
place of slaughter for the poor ,Christians." <i>Third book,
for the year 255, page 71,</i> Col. 2.</p>

<h2>OF THE CRUELTY AND VIOLENCE OF THIS
PERSECUTION</h2> 

<p>P. J. Twisck, having concluded his account of the
aforementioned matter, proceeds immediately to show how cruelly
and lamentably the innocent Christians were treated at that
time."The martyrdoms," he writes,"were manifold: they were cast
before wild beasts; they were beaten, wounded, executed with
the sword, burned, torn limb from limb, rent asunder, pinched
with red-hot tongs; red-hot nails were driven in their fingers
and nerves. Some were hung up by their arms, and heavy weights
tied to their feet, and thus were torn asunder gradually and
with great pain. Others, whose wounded bodies had been smeared
over with honey, were placed naked on the earth in the hot sun,
to be tormented and stung to death by flies, bees, and other
insects. Others were beaten with clubs, and cast into prison,
until they miserably perished.", "Under the reign of the afore-mentioned cruel and tyrannical
Emperors," he writes a little further on,"many Christians had
to wander and roam</p>

</div><div id="140"> 

<p>about in foreign countries, in secluded places, along
shores, in caverns, on mountains, in caves, amidst want and
poverty; leaving comfort, honor, prosperity, peace, friends,
money, and property." Among many others, there is an account
given in the Keyser's Chronijk, of a youth of sixteen years,
called Paul, well versed in different languages, and the son of
a rich man, who, in order to escape the persecution, went out
into a village to live with his sister. But his brother-in-law
was moved by avarice to betray him, that thus he might obtain
possession of his property. His sister having warned him of his
danger, he fled into the mountains, gladly leaving behind him
all his possessions. However, God prepared him there a secret
cave, where he could quench his thirst with pure water, and
satisfy his hunger with roots, herbs, and the fruits of the
trees. <i>Idem. Ibidem,</i> from <i>Euseb. Fasc. Temp., fol.
94. Chron. Mich., fol. 161. Chron. Seb. Franc., fol. 18, HisE.
Andr., fol. 177, 178, 2d part, fol. 174. Paul Merula, fol. 217,
218, 221, Jan.</i> Crespin, <i>fol. 65.</i></p>

<h2>DIONYSIUS, BISHOP OF THE CHURCH AT ALEXANDRIA,
WITH TWO OF HIS FELLOW-BELIEVERS, GAIUS AND PETER, AFTER MUCH SUFFERING, EXILED INTO A DESERT PLACE OF LYBIA, THREE DAYS JOURNEY FROM PARAETONIUM, FOR THE
TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, ABOUT THE YEAR</h2> 

<p><i>260</i></p>

<p>After different letters of Dionysius, bishop at Alexandria
(recorded by Abr. Mellinus from Eusebius), concerning the
persecution he suffered, there follows one which Dionysius
wrote to Domitius and Didymus, about the oppression of the
Christians under Valerian, as well as how he himself was
oppressed at that time. Among other statements, it contains
these words, "It is not necessary to mention all the names of
the Christian martyrs, because their number is very great, and
you do not know them; but know ye of this persecution, in
general, that innumerably many men and women, old and young
people, old women and young girls, of every state and
condition, were, some scourged, some burned, some beheaded, or
made martyrs in some other manner; and still the proconsul
continues in his cruelty; putting to death those that were made
known to him, causing some to be rent asunder by divers
torments, holding others in bonds and severe confinement, and
letting them perish through hunger and thirst, forbidding all
to come to them, yea closely watching those who but endeavor to
get near them., "Nevertheless, the Lord has thus strengthened the hearts of
the brethren, that they, for the name of Christ, have
constantly visited these oppressed prisoners, notwithstanding
it was interdicted un der penalty of death. And although this
persecution has lasted for a considerable length of time, there
have still been some whom God did not deem worthy to take to
Himself as martyrs. Among whom, says Dionysius, I myself yet
remain, until the Lord will otherwise dispose of me; since He
doubtless preserves me for some other time, which appears to
Him more suitable. At present I, together with Gaius and Peter,
am separated from all the rest of the brethren, confined in a
desert place of Lybia, three days' journey from Paraetonium."
Compare A. Melt., <i>1st book, fol. 79,</i> cot. <i>2,</i> from
<i>Euseb., lib. 7.</i></p>

<p>We selected this letter of Dionysius from all the rest,
because there is stated in it, on the .one hand, the severity
of this persecution in general, and, on the other hand, the
oppression which this friend of God himself suffered; inasmuch
as he, after much wandering, was separated, together with his
two dear friends, Gaius and Peter, from all the rest of his
brethren, and confined in a desert place of Lybia, there
expecting death for the name of the Lord.</p>

<p>Of Dionysius P. J. Twisck states, that he as well as
Tertullian held a figurative or spiritual view of the Lord's
Supper, i.e., that the words of Christ, "This is my body," signify, "This is a figure of my body."
<i>Second book, for the year 200, page 53, cot. 1, concerning
Tertullian.</i></p>

<p>The same author, speaking of Origen, says among other things
of Dionysius, that after Origen and Heracles he presided over
the schools of the catechumens (that is, those who were
instructed in the Christian doctrine, before baptism) at
Alexandria. <i>Third book, for the year 231, page 61, cot.
1.</i></p>

<p>In another place the afore-mentioned author states that
Dionysius, whom he calls a catechetical preacher, accompanied
Pancratius, when the latter was baptized at Mount Celinus. In.
<i>the same book, for the year 253, page 71,</i> cot. 1, from
<i>Wicelius, in Chorosanctorum. Grond. Bew., letter B.,
Leonhard, lib. 1.</i></p>

<p>In the second book, 13th chapter, D. Vicecomes cites
Dionysius (from Eusebius) as saying, "Many heathen adopted at
their baptism the name of the apostle John, from special love
and admiration for him, as well as because of the zeal which
animated them, to follow him, and because they desired to be
loved by the Lord, as he was. For the same reason the names of
Peter and Paul became prevalent among the believing children of
God., "All these," says the writer who has recorded this,"are
beautiful reminders, which were administered to the catechumens
before and after baptism; which certainly cannot apply to
infants." <i>Baptism. Hist.,</i> printed at <i>Dortmund,</i> A.
D. 1646, <i>and</i> 1647, <i>2d part, concerning the third
century, page 320.</i></p>

</div><div id="141"> 

<h2>FRUCTUOSUS, BISHOP OF THE CHURCH OF TARRAGONA,
WITH AUGURIUS AND EULOGIUS, HIS DEACONS, BURNED ALIVE FOR THE
TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, AT TARRAGONA, ABOUT THE YEAR 261</h2> 

<p>It is stated that at this time, Fxuctuosus, bishop of the
church of Tarragona in Spain, and Agurius and Eulogius, his
deacons, were apprehended at the command of Aemilian, the
Proconsul, and held in prison six days, before they were
brought before the tribunal of the Proconsul. When they were
standing before the judgment seat, Aemilian commanded them to
kneel before the altars, and worship the gods standing thereon,
and sacrifice to them, saying to Fructuosus, "I understand that
thou art a teacher of a new-devised religion, and that thou
incitest giddy young women, no longer to:go to the groves,
where the gods are worshiped, yea, to forsake Jupiter himself.
Go on, then, despising our religion, but know thou, that the
Emperor Gallien has, with his own lips, issued a decree by
which he binds all his subjects, to serve the same gods which
the prince, that is, the Emperor, serves or honors."</p>

<p>Thereupon Bishop Fructuosus answered, "I worship the eternal
Prince, who has created the days and the gods, and is Lord even
over the Emperor Gallien; and Christ, who is begotten of the
eternal Father Himself, whose servant, and the shepherd of
whose flock I am."</p>

<p>The Proconsul derisively said, "Yea, who hast been it till
now; but thou art so no longer." With this, he sentenced
Fructuosus and his two deacons, Augurius and Eulogius, to be
burned alive.</p>

<p>These faithful martyrs, having received the sentence of
death, for the name of Christ, rejoiced in their impending
martyrdom, and when they saw the people weep, as they were led
to death, they forbade them to weep. When some offered
Fructuosus a drink on the way, that he might refresh his heart,
he refused it, according to the example of Christ, saying, "Now
is our fast-day. I do not wish to drink; it is not yet the
ninth hour of the day (that is three o'clock in the afternoon,
before which time those who fasted did not eat); and death
itself shall not break my fast-day."</p>

<p>When they arrived in the arena, where the executioner had
been ordered to build a great fire in which to burn these pious
martyrs, a dispute (proceeding, however, from heartfelt love)
arose among the faithful Christians, as to who should first
untie the latchets of the shoes of the bishop, their beloved
shepherd and teacher. But Fructuosus would not permit it,
saying, "I shall untie them myself from my feet, so that I can
go unhindered into the fire." And perceiving that they wept, he
said, "Why weep ye? and why do you ask me to remember you? I
shall pray for all of Christ's people."</p>

<p>Standing with his bare feet by the fire, he said to all the
people, "Believe me! what you see before your eyes is no
punishment; it passes away in a moment of time, and does not
take away life, but restores it. O happy souls! who through
this temporal ascend into heaven unto God, and who on the last
day, shall be saved from everlasting fire."</p>

<p>All at once they hastened towards the fire, which indeed
burned off in a moment the bands with which their hands had
been fastened on their backs, thus freeing these; but their
bodies remained intact in this great heat, so that with
outstretched hands they prayed God to suffer the flames
speedily to deliver them from the agony of death. Their prayer
having been heard, they, leaving their frail bodies here as
pledges, committed their souls unto God, and the three martyrs
fell calmly asleep in the Lord, from whom, on the day of
judgment, they will receive, in reward of their faithful
services and steadfast testimonies, the martyr's crown, and
white robes in token of their victory. <i>Abr. Mell., 1st book,
fol. 81, col. 4, and fol. 82, col. 1, 2, from Prudent. Stephan.
Hym..</i> 6, <i>ex Actis Proconsul.</i></p>

<h2>MARINUS, OF NOBLE DESCENT, BUT PREFERRING THE GOSPEL TO THE SWORD, BEHEADED AT JERUSALEM FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, ABOUT THE YEAR <i>262</i></h2> 

<p>In the ancient records of the pious witnesses of Jesus
Christ, an account is given of Marinus, a citizen of Jerusalem,
of noble descent, who, although he belonged to the nobility,
entertained a sincere affection far the true Christians, who at
that time were oppressed beyond measure. On this account his
enviers, who were jealous of the honor of his nobility,
severely accused and charged him with being a Christian; which
he also confessed, when he was brought before the judge; yea,
he declared with a loud and clear voice, that <i>he was
certainly rn Christian.</i> The Judge then gave him three
hours' respite to consider, whether he would die as a
Christian, or whether he would sacrifice to the gods and the
Emperor.</p>

<p>As he went away from the tribunal, Theotecnes, the bishop of
the church in that city, took him by the hand, and led him to
the meeting, in the meeting-place, strengthened him with many
words in the faith, and, placing before him the sword which he
was wont to carry at his side, and also the Gospel [book], he
asked him which of the two he would choose?</p>

<p>When Marinus, with a firm faith, stretched forth his hand
for the Gospel, choosing it instead of the sword, Theotecnes
said to him, "O my son I keep that which thou host chosen, and,
despising this present life, hope for the eternal. Depart in
good confidence, and receive the crown which the Lord has
prepared for thee."</p>

<p>Marinus accordingly returned to the tribunal, and was
forthwith called by the lord's servant, for the appointed time
had come; he did not delay or</p>

</div><div id="142"> 

<p>wait until he was asked, but said of his own accord: that he
had considered the matter, and that it was established by the
law of the fathers, that God must be obeyed rather than men.
Eusebius Pamphilius writes, that when Marinus had answered
thus, the judge immediately gave sentence that he should be
beheaded. <i>Lib. 7, cap. 15.</i></p>

<p>P. J. Twisck gives the following account of this
Marinus, "When Marinus confessed .that he was a Christian, and
chose the Bible in preference to the sword, he was called
before the tribunal, sentenced, and beheaded." <i>Third book,
for the year 262, page 73, col. 2; from Euseb.</i> Compare this
with the <i>Introduction, fol. 41, col. 2.</i></p>

<h2>THREE PIOUS PEASANTS, PRISCUS, MALCHUS, AND ALEXANDER, WHO SOUGHT HEAVENLY CROWNS, TORN BY THE WILD BEASTS, AT CESAREA, IN PALESTINE, ABOUT THE YEAR <i>263</i></h2> 

<p>In this persecution under Valerian there were three very
noted and God-fearing martyrs at Cesarea, in Palestine, who
nevertheless were but simple peasants, the first called
Priscus, the second Malchus, the third Alexander. Eusebius
writes, that, as they lived near the suburbs of Cesarea, a
divine zeal for the faith was kindled within them, and they
accused each other (and each himself, says Mellinus), of
slothfulness, since heavenly crowns of martyrdom were
distributed, or at least offered, in the city, and they were so
little inclined to ask for them, notwithstanding our Lord and
Saviour had said that the kingdom of heaven must be taken by
violence, and therefore it did not become them to remain so
earthly and slothful. Having exhorted one another with such
words, they went into the city, and addressed and reproved that
cruel tyrant, the criminal judge, demanding of him, why he shed
so much Christian blood. The tyrant instantly replied
saying, "They shall be thrown before wild beasts, to be torn by
them, who do not like to see the blood of the Christians shed;
which, it is stated, was done to them." Compare <i>Eu ~eb.,
lib. 7, cap. 12, fol. 131, col. 1, 2, letter</i> Fa G, with the
<i>Introduction, fol. 4, col. 2.</i> Also, <i>loh. Gys., fol.
21, col. 2.</i></p>

<p>A. Mellinus, writing in defense of the aforementioned three
peasants, against those who would pronounce them too bold, says
after other remarks, "Who are you that judge your brethren? How
do you know of what spirit they were? No one has courage of
himself; but it is the gift of God, not only to believe in
Christ, but also to suffer for His name: hence, neither is of
ourselves. They also did not seek their own honor, but to
magnify the name of Christ by their death; to which, no doubt,
they were impelled by divine zeal, since their zeal was not
without knowledge, but proceeded from the power of faith;
whereby they were prepared through the divine Spirit to
proclaim the honor of God through their death; for this was
their sole object." <i>First book, fol. 79, col. 4.</i></p>

<h2>PHILIP, PRIVATUS, FLORENTIN, PONTIUS, AND
MANY OTHERS, PUT TO DEATH FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, IN DIFFERENT PLACES, DURING THIS PERSECUTION, TILL ABOUT A. D. <i>270</i></h2> 

<p>Besides the afore-mentioned martyrs who were put to death in
this persecution, certain other authors have noted various
other pious witnesses of Jesus Christ, who, loving the honor of
God more than their own lives, were put to death at that time,
and under that same Emperor; which we shall presently relate.
Besides the three hundred Christians whom P. J. Twisck places
in the year <i>264,</i> as having been burned in a limekiln,
because they would not throw incense on the coals, for a
sacrifice in honor of Jupiter, as may be seen in the <i>3d
book, page 75, col. 1, from Histor. Adr., fol. 30,</i> several
names are mentioned, as, Philip, bishop of the church at
Alexandria, who was put to death with the sword in this
persecution, for the testimony of Jesus Christ. J. Gys.,
<i>fol. 21, col. 2, from Vinc. Spec. Hist., lib. 11, cap. 23.
Henr. d' Oxf., lib. 6; cap. 21.</i> Also, Florentin and
Pontius, pious men, are stated to have been put to death in
France, for the name of the Lord, together with others, who are
also mentioned. <i>Introduction, fol. 41, col. 2, Seb. Franck,
fol. 22, col. 4.</i></p>

<h2>OF THE NINTH PERSECUTION <b>OF THE
   CHRISTIANS,</b></h2> 

<p align="center"><b>UNDER AURELIAN, COMMENCED ABOUT <i>A. D.
273</i></b></p>

<h2>CONCERNING THE CRUELTY AND
   BLOODTHIRSTINESS OF THE EMPEROR AURELIAN AGAINST THE CHRISTIANS, AND HOW HE WAS PREVENTED THEREIN BY GOD</h2> 

<p>A. Mellinus writes, "Aurelian was a stern, cruel, and
bloodthirsty Emperor by nature, and although at first he had a
good opinion of the Christians, he nevertheless afterwards
became averse to, and estranged from them: and having,
undoubtedly, by some talebearers, been instigated against the
Christians, he allowed himself to be seduced so far, as to
raise the ninth general persecution of the Roman monarchy
against them, which persecution .he, however, did not carry
out. For at the very moment in which the decrees written
against the Christians, were laid before him by his secretary,
that he might sign them, and when he was about to take the pen
in hand, the hand of God suddenly touched him, smiting his hand
with lameness, and thus preventing him in his purpose, so that
he could not sign them." First <i>book, fol. 87, col. 3;
from</i> hopisc. Victor. Eus., <i>lib. 7.</i> Post. <i>Literal,
Aug. de Civit. Dei., lib. 18, cap. 52.</i> Oral.. <i>lib. 7,
cap. 16. Theodoret. Hilt., lib. 4, cap. 17.</i></p>

</div><div id="143"> 

<h2>A MORE PARTICULAR ACCOUNT OF THIS PERSECUTION, ACCORDING TO P. J. TWISCK</h2> 

<p>He writes, "Emperor Aurelian commenced the ninth persecution
against the Christians. He was by nature inclined to tyranny,
and was a furious bloodhound, as Eutropius writes, so that he
did not hesitate to kill his sister's son, and finally, through
the atrocity of his own wicked nature, and evil counsel
suggested to him, he became an enemy and persecutor of the
Christians. He sent letters to the Governors of the Roman
country, that they should vex the Christians; but when he was
about actually to carry the persecution into effect, he could
not sign the decrees which were to be issued against the
Christians, because God smote him, so that his hand was
paralyzed. Through divine judgment he was terrified by thunder,
lightning, and fire-darts, at the time that he was constantly
meditating how. he might slay and exterminate the Christians;
and shortly after was himself killed by his notary." <i>Third
book, for the year 270, page 76, col. 2, from Chron. Mich.
Sac., fol. 178. Euseb., lib. 7. Chron. Seb. Fr., fol. 18.
Chron. Carionis, lib. 3, Hist. Andrew, fol. 178, Zd part, fol.
175. Paul. Mer., fol. 226. Jan. Crespin., fol. 62. Chron.
Andrew, lib. 13, fol. 343.</i></p>

<h2>WHAT THE AUTHOR OF THE INTRODUCTION, ETC., HAS WRITTEN ABOUT THIS PERSECUTION</h2> 

<p>In A. D. <i>273</i> arose the ninth persecution of the
Christians, under the Emperor Aurelian; but it was not as great
as the former, because death suddenly overtook him as he
proposed to himself, to begin it. Under him were killed . . .
and many others, concerning whom no special accounts are
extant. <i>Fol. 41, col. 2.</i></p>

<p>Notwithstanding Emperor Aurelian could not himself sign the
above-mentioned decrees against the -Christians, the
persecution nevertheless proceeded in some places, so .that
here and there some laid down their lives for the testimony of
Jesus Christ; of whom we shall mention only a few, whom we have
selected as true martyrs.</p>

<h2>PRIVATUS, BISHOP OF THE CHURCH OF JESUS CHRIST AT GEVAULDAN, BEATEN TO DEATH WITH STICKS FOR THE TRUE FAITH, ABOUT A. D. <i>274</i></h2> 

<p>When Chorus, the king of the Germans, in the time of
Valerian and Aurelian, yea, up to the time of Probus,
devastated France, he found among other martyrs who dwelt
separated from men in deserts and mountains, a certain pious
man, called Privatus, Bishop of the church at Gevauldan. This
man, sojourning in the mountains, fasting and praying, was
taken prisoner by the Germans, and because he, as behooves a
good shepherd, would not deliver his lambs into the claws of
the wolves, by himself sacrificing to Satan, which he would in
no wise do, he was beaten with sticks by them for a very long
time, till they left him lie for dead; in consequence of which
treatment he also died a few days after. This happened, as some
have supposed, under Valerian and Gallien, but in reality,
under Aurelian. Compare <i>A. Mell., 1st book, fol. 89, col. 1,
from Greg. Turon. Hist., lib. 1, cap. 34,</i> with
<i>Introduction, fol. 41, col. 2,</i> where he is called
Privatus, Bishop of Gablen.</p>

<h2>MAMAS, A SHEPHERD, THRUST THROUGH WITH A THREE-PRONGED SPEAR, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, AT CAESAREA IN CAPPADOCIA, ABOUT A. D. <i>274</i></h2> 

<p>Mamas, a shepherd, who pastured his sheep upon the mountains
and in the wildernesses of Cappadocia, lived very poorly,
without a hut, dwelling under the blue heavens, and subsisting
on the milk and cheese of his flock, as Basilius testifies.
Nazianzenus adds, that the hinds also suffered themselves to be
milked by him daily, and that he was thus fed by them.</p>

<p>Basilius says, that from the course of the heavenly bodies
he learned to know the wonderful works of God, his Creator, and
thus His eternal power and wisdom. However, the accounts
written concerning him state that he had the Word of God with
him in the desert, and that he read in it daily.</p>

<p>It is quite probable, writes Mellinus, that this Mamas, in
order to escape the persecution in the time of Decius and
Valerian, went into the wilderness, and remained there till the
time of Aurelian, whose proconsul of Cappadocia, Alexander,
caused him to be brought out of the wilderness, and to appear
before him, at Caesarea, the capital of Cappadocia.</p>

<p>The proconsul called him a sorcerer or conjurer, because the
wild animals of the wilderness so tamely submitted to him.</p>

<p>Mamas answered, "I am a servant of Christ, and know nothing
about sorcery; but would rather live among the wild animals,
than among you</p>

<p>for they feel the power of their Creator in and through me;
but ye will not know God. I cannot sufficiently wonder that
you, who have attained to gray hairs, are still in such gross
darkness of ignorance, as to forsake the true and living God,
and give divine honor to deaf and dumb idols."</p>

<p>When he was requested to say at least with his lips, that he
would sacrifice to the gods, so 'as to escape punishment, Mamas
replied, "I shall never, either with my lips, or with my heart,
deny the true God and King, Jesus Christ. So far am I from
seeking to escape suffering for the name of Christ, that I, on
the contrary, consider it the highest honor, the greatest gain,
and the utmost benefit, which you can confer upon me."</p>

<p>Upon this confession, the proconsul had him placed on the
rack, cruelly scourged, tormented with pincers, burnt on his
sides with lamps and torches, and tortured in various other
ways. But</p>

</div><div id="144"> 

<p>seeing that in all these and other torments he remained
steadfast, he finally had him thrust through with a
three-pronged spear; and thus Mamas became a faithful martyr
for his Saviour, under Emperor Aurelian, at Caesarea in
Cappadocia. A. <i>Mell., 1st book, fol. 89, col. 2, 3, ex
Basilii Concio, in Mart. Mamant. Nazianz. Orat. 43. Act. per
Metaphrast.</i></p>

<h2>SYMPHORIAN, A PIOUS CHRISTIAN, BEHEADED FOR THE NAME OF THE LORD JESUS, AT AUGUSTODUNUM, NOW CALLED AUTUM, ABOUT A. D. <i>275</i></h2> 

<p>It is stated that at this time, as the heathen at
Augustodunum, now called Autum, in Burgundy, on a feast-day of
the goddess Cybele, whom they called the mother of the gods,
carried around her image on a wagon, in procession, a certain
pious Christian, called Symphorianus, met this image, and
refused to worship it; in consequence of which he was
apprehended as an impious person, or despiser of the gods, and
brought before Heraclius, the Proconsul, who, in that city,
exercised the strictest vigilance over the Christians. When he
stood:before the judgment seat, the Proconsul asked him for his
name. Symphorian replied that he was a Christian by religion,
was born of Christian parents, and had received the name
Symphorian.</p>

<p>The Judge said, "Why didst thou not honor the mother of the
gods, or worship her image?"</p>

<p>Symphorian answered, "Because, I am a Christian, and call
only upon the living God, who reigns in heaven. But as to the
image of Satan I not only do not worship it,:but, if you will
let me, I will break it in pieces with a hammer."</p>

<p>The Judge said, "This man is not only sacrilegious at heart,
but also obstinate and a rebel; but perhaps he knows nothing of
the ordinances or decrees of the Emperor. Let the officer,
therefore, read to him the decrees of the Emperors."</p>

<p>The decrees having been read to him, Symphorian said, "I
shall notwithstanding never confess that this image is anything
but a worthless idol of Satan, by which he persuades men that
he is a god; while it is an evident demonstration of their
eternal destruction for all those who put their trust in
it, "</p>

<p>Upon this confession; the judge caused him to be scourged
and cast into prison, to keep him for some other day. Some time
after, he had him brought again before his judgment seat, and
addressed him with kind words, saying, "Symphorian, sacrifice to
the gods, that thou mayest be promoted to the highest honor and
state at court. If not, I ,call the gods to witness that I am
compelled this day, after various tortures, to sentence thee to
death."</p>

<p>Symphorian answered, "What matters it, if we deliver up this
life to Christ, since, by reason of debt, in any event we must
pay it to Him? Your gifts and presents are mingled with the
sweetness of the adulterated honey, with which you poisor the
minds of the unbelieving. But our treasure; and riches are ever
in Christ, our Lord, alone; and do not perish through age or
length Of time whereas your desire is insatiable, and you
posses nothing, even though you have everything in abundance.
The joy and mirth which you enjoy in this world, is like fine
glass, which, if placed in the radiance and heat of the sun,
cracks and breaks in two; but God alone is our supreme
happiness."</p>

<p>After Symphorian had said these and like things before the
judge, Heraclius, the Proconsul, pronounced sentence of death
upon him, saying, "Symphorian, having openly been found guilty
of death, because he hath blasphemed against the holy altars,
shall be executed with the sword."</p>

<p>When this godly confessor was led to death, to be offered up
to Christ, his mother called down to him from the wall of the
city this comforting admonition, "Symphorian, my son! my son!
remember the living God; let thy heart be steadfast and
valiant. We can surely not fear death, which beyond doubt leads
us into the true life. Lift up thy heart to heaven, my son, and
behold Him who reigns in heaven I Today thy life will not be
taken from thee, but be changed into a better one. If thou
remainest steadfast today, thou shalt make a happy exchange:
leaving this earthly house, thou shalt go to dwell in the
tabernacle not made with hands."</p>

<p>Symphorian, having been thus strengthened by his mother, was
taken out of the city, and beheaded there, having commended his
soul into the hands of God, in the time of Emperor Aurelian,
and Herachus, the Proconsul, at Autum in Burgundy. His dead
body was buried by certain Christians. 'Compare A. <i>Mell.,
lst book, fol. 19, col: 4,</i> and <i>fol. 90, col. 1, ex Actis
Proconsul. Greg. Turan. Degl. Confess., cap. 77, and Hist.,
lib. 2, cap. 15,</i> with different other authors concerning
Symphorian.</p>

<h2>SEVERAL YEARS AFTER THE DEATH OF THE PRECEDING
MARTYRS, A. D. <i>284,</i> DIOCLETIAN ATTAINED TO THE REIGN OF THE ROMAN EMPIRE, AND SHORTLY AFTERWARDS ISSUED HIS FIRST EDICT AGAINST THE CHRISTIANS, WHICH WAS FOLLOWED BY A SECOND IN 302, CALLED THE TENTH PERSECUTION OF THE CHRISTIANS</h2> 

<p>Before the tenth general and severe persecution of the
Christians began, A. D. 302, many Christians were put to death
in different places, and throughout this whole period, by
virtue of the first edict of Diocletian. Of these we shall
present a few, and then, with the beginning of'the next
century, proceed to the tenth and severest persecution.</p>

</div><div id="145"> 

<h2>CLAUDIUS, ASTERIUS, AND NEON, THREE BROTHERS,
CRUCIFIED FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST; ALSO TWO WOMEN, DONUINA AND THEONILLA, TORMENTED TO DEATH FOR THE SAME TESTIMONY, AT AEGlEA IN CILICIA, A. D. 285</h2> 

<p>It is stated that in the second year of the reign of Emperor
Diocletian, which coincides with the year 285, three pious
Christians, spiritual as well as natural brothers, called
Claudius, Asterius, and Neon, were accused to the judge of the
City of Aegaea, in Cilicia, of being Christians, by their
stepmother, who, as it seems, was a heathen woman.</p>

<p>Two God-fearing Christian women, named Donuina, and
Theonilla, were also accused with them. They were all
imprisoned till the arrival of Lysias, the Proconsul, who, on
his tour through the provinces of Cilicia, also came to Aegxa,
and there held criminal court against the Christians.</p>

<p><i>How Claudius was examined</i> first.-Claudius being first
brought before his judgment seat, Lysias asked him for his
name, and admonished him, not thus rashly to throw away the
bloom of his youth, but to sacrifice to the gods, and thus obey
the command of the Emperor, that he might escape the ready
penalty.</p>

<p>Claudius answered, "Our God does not need these sacrifices;
He has more pleasure in works of love and mercy towards our
fellow men, and in holiness of life; but your gods are unclean
evil spirits, and delight in such sacrifices, by which they
bring eternal punishment upon those who offer them. You shall
therefore never be able to persuade me to honor them."</p>

<p>Lysias said, "Bind him, and scourge him with rods; for there
is no other way to tame his folly."</p>

<p>Claudius said, "By these severe tortures thou shalt not harm
me, but wilt bring down upon thyself eternal punishment."</p>

<p>Lysias said, "Our lords, the Emperors, have commanded that
the Christians shall sacrifice to the gods. It is their will,
that the disobedient be punished; while to them who obey their
commandment they promise honor and office."</p>

<p>Claudius replied, "These gifts and benefits endure but a
short time, but the confession of Christ imparts eternal
glory."</p>

<p>Lysias commanded that they should suspend him on the torture
stake, put fire under his feet, and cut off pieces from his
heels.</p>

<p>Claudius said, "They who fear God with all their hearts
cannot be overcome either by fire or by other torments; for
they know that even these things are serviceable to them unto
eternal life."</p>

<p>Lysias commanded, "Let him be tormented with pincers, scraped
or cut with potsherds, and burned with torches."</p>

<p>Claudius said, "I say nevertheless, that thou doest all this
for Satan, and that it conduces to myn welfare, but tends to
thy eternal perdition. Yea, thy fire and all these torments
promote my salvation. Such is our condition, that those who
thus suffer for the name of Christ, obtain eternal life."</p>

<p>Lysias then commanded, "Desist from him; lead him back into
prison, and bring forth another."</p>

<p>Asterius <i>examined.-When Asterius,</i> the second brother,
stood before the Proconsul, Lysias said, "Obey me, Asterius!
sacrifice to the gods, and thus escape punishment."</p>

<p>Asterius answered, "I shall not do it; for I worship the only
true God, who has created heaven and earth, and who shall come
to judge the quick and the dead.</p>

<p>Lysias said, "Throw him on the rack, tear his flesh from his
sides with pincers, and say to him</p>

<p>'Believe now at least, and sacrifice to the gods."' Asterius
replied, "I am a brother of him who was tormented just now, and
we hold the same confession of faith in Christ. Do what thou
mayest; my body is in thy power, but not my soul."</p>

<p>Lysias commanded, "Bind him hand and foot, stretch him out,
and torture him; take the pincers, throw hot coals under his
feet, scourge him with rods and thongs."</p>

<p>Asterius said to the Proconsul, "Thou doest foolishly, since
thou art preparing, not for me, but for thyself, much severer
torments. Do thy best, for aught I care. I can stand it, if not
one member of my body remains untormented."</p>

<p>Lysias said, "Loose him, and keep him in custody with the
other; and let the third one be brought forth." This was
done.</p>

<p><i>Neon examined.-When Neon</i> stood before the judgment
seat, Lysias said to him, "Son, listen to me, and sacrifice to
the gods, so that thou needst not suffer all this."</p>

<p>Neon said, "There are no gods, neither have they any power.
You worship idols, but I honor the God of heaven."</p>

<p>Lysias said, "Take him by the throat and let the crier
announce to him, to desist blaspheming the gods."</p>

<p>Neon answered, "He that speaks does not blaspheme the
truth."</p>

<p>Lysias commanded, "Stretch him out on the rack; put coals
under him; beat and cut him."</p>

<p>Neon said, "I know what is needful for me. Whatever, then, is
profitable to my soul, that shall I do; but I cannot be moved
from my faith."</p>

<p>Lysias having gone within to the other members of the
tribunal, and having drawn the cover over the court, determined
with them upon the sentence of death for the three brothers.
When he came out, he read from a tablet their sentence, which
was as follows, "Claudius, Asterius, and Neon, brothers, who are
Christians, who blaspheme the gods, and refuse to sacrifice,
shall be crucified before the forum, and their bodies be given
to the birds of heaven as food, to be devoured by them; and</p>

</div><div id="146"> 

<p>this shall be executed by Eulalius, the jailer, and
Archelaus, the executioner."</p>

<p>However, before they were led forth to death, they were
taken back to prison. Then Eulalius, the jailer, brought out
Donuina, one of the women imprisoned, to whom Lysias, the
Proconsul, said, "See, woman, this fire and these torments are
ready for you. If you desire to escape unhurt by them,
sacrifice before the gods."</p>

<p>Donuina replied, "I shall not do it, lest I fall into the
everlasting pains of hell. I serve God and His anointed Christ,
who has created heaven and earth, and all that is therein: Your
gods are of wood and stone, and are made by human hands."</p>

<p><i>Donuina examined on the</i> rack.-Lysias said, "Strip her
stark naked, stretch her, and lacerate all her members with
rods." While they were beating her she died. Then said
Archelaus, the executioner, to the Proconsul, "Your highness,
Donuina has died." Lysias commanded, "Let her dead body be
thrown into the river."</p>

<p>Eulalius, the jailer, then said, "Here is Theonilla." Lysias
said to her, "Woman, thou hast seen, what punishment they who
were disobedient have suffered, and how they have been
tormented: Honor the gods, therefore, and sacrifice, so that
thou mayest be delivered from these punishments."</p>

<p>Theonilla answered, "I fear Him who has power to cast both
soul and body into the fire of hell; and who will burn with it
all those who depart from God, and give honor to Satan."</p>

<p>Lysias said, "Smite her on the cheeks, throw her down, bind
her feet, and torment her greatly."</p>

<p>Theonilla answered, "Does it seem to thee, to be right and
proper, thus to maltreat a well-born woman? Thou knowest, that
thou canst not conceal from God what thou doest to me."</p>

<p>Lysias commanded, "Hang her up by the braids of her hair, and
smite her on the cheeks."</p>

<p><i>Theonilla severely examined on the</i> rack.-Having been
stripped naked, Theonilla said, "Art thou not ashamed to uncover
my nakedness seeing that through me, thou puttest to like shame
thy mother and thy wife, who are also women?"</p>

<p>Lysias asked whether she had a husband, or whether she was a
widow?</p>

<p>Theonilla replied, "I have been a widow now for over
twenty-three years, and have remained thus single, in order to
more zealously serve God with fasting, watching and praying;
which God I did not know until after I had renounced the world
and the idols.</p>

<p>Lysias commanded them, in order to disgrace her the more, to
shave the hair from her head, put bundles of thorns around her
body, and stretch her out between four stakes, then, to beat
her over her whole body, and put hot coals upon her, that she
might be consumed. When Eulalius, the jailer, and Archelaus,
the executioner, had done all this, death ensued, and they said
to Lysias, "Sir, she is dead now." Lysias commanded that her
dead body should be sewed up in a leathern bag, and thrown into
the water; which was done. Thus did these holy martyrs suffer,
under Lysias, the Proconsul of Cilicia, in Aegaea, on the 23d
of August, in the second year of Diocletian, when he was
Burgomaster with Aristobulus, A. D. 285. These acts have for
the most part been taken from the records of the clerk of the
criminal court of the city of Aegaea, and were gathered by the
ancient Christians. These court documents were called Acta
Proconsularia. Compare this with A. <i>Mell., lst book,
fol.</i> 92, eol. 3, 4, <i>and fol.</i> 93, col. 1.</p>

<h2>ZENOBIUS AND HIS SISTER ZENOBIA, BEHEADED AFTER MANY TORMENTS, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, AT AEGEA IN CILICIA, A. D. 285</h2> 

<p>Not long afterwards, under the same Emperor and Proconsul,
and in the same year, Zenobius, Bishop of the church of Aegxa
in Cilicia, and his sister, were apprehended; and when there
were held out to him on the one hand, great wealth, honor, and
position, if, in accordance with the command of the Emperor, he
would serve the gods, but on the other hand, manifold torments,
Zenobius answered, "I love Jesus Christ more than all the riches
and honor of this world. Death and the torments with which you
threaten me, I do not consider a disadvantage, but my greatest
gain."</p>

<p>Having received this answer from the martyr, Lysias caused
him to be suspended on the rack, and inhumanly tormented on his
whole body.</p>

<p>While the executioners were busy with Zenobius, his sister
Zenobia, having learned of it, came running, crying with a loud
voice, "Thou tyrant, what villainy has my brother committed,
that thou dost thus cruelly torment him?"</p>

<p>Having thus addressed Lysias, and set at naught his
entreating as well as his threatening words, she, too, was
seized by the servants, stripped naked, and stretched out, and
roasted beside her brother on a red-hot iron bed, or roasting
pan. The tyrant, deriding the martyrs, said, "Now let Christ
come and help you, seeing you suffer these torments for
Him."</p>

<p>Zenobius replied, "See, He is already with us, and cools,
with His heavenly dew the flames of fire on our bodies; though
thou, surrounded as thou art with the thick darkness of
wickedness, canst not perceive it on us."</p>

<p>Lysias, almost beside himself, commanded that they should be
put naked into boiling caldrons. But seeing that the boiling
water did not injure them, or at least, that they could not
thereby be made to apostatize, he had them taken out of the
city and beheaded. Their dead bodies were buried by Caius and
Hermogenes in the nearest cave. This happened A. D. 285, on the
30th day of October, in the city of Aegaea in Cilicia. <i>Idem.
Ibideire. ex Actis Zenobii pracons. per Metaphorast.</i></p>

 

   <h1>THARACUS, PROBUS, AND ANDRONICUS, THREE PIOUS CHRISTIANS, FIRST VERY DREADFULLY TORMENTED, THEN THROWN BEFORE THE WILD BEASTS, AND FINALLY THRUST THROUGH, FOR THE FAITH OF THE SON OF GOD, AT TARSUS IN CILICIA, A. D. 290</h1>
</div><div id="147"> 
<p>At Tarsus in Cilicia, the birthplace of the apostle Paul,
there were imprisoned, A. D. 290, three pious Christians,
namely, Tharacus, Probus; and Andronicus; who, having been
brought to prison, before the tribunal, and to the rack, and
having suffered beyond measure for the name of the Lord and the
faith in Jesus Christ, were finally put to death, concerning
which we shall notice and present to the reader the judicial
proceedings, as we have found them in ancient authors. From
Act. Procons.</p>

<p>When Diocletian was Emperor for the fourth, and Maximian for
the third time, Tharacus, Probus, and Andronicus were brought
by the captain Demetrius before Maximus, the President, at
Pompeiopolis.</p>

<p><i>First examination of</i> Tharacus.-Makimus first asked
Tharacus his name, because the latter was the oldest. Tharacus
answered, "I am a Christian."</p>

<p>Maximus said, "Be silent about this ungodly name, and tell me
your name."</p>

<p>Tharacus again replied, "I am a Christian."</p>

<p>Maximus said to his beadles, "Break his jaws, and tell him
not to answer me thus any more."</p>

<p>Tharacus responded, "I have told thee my best name; but if
thou desirest to know how my parents called me, my name is
Tharacus, and when I followed war, I was called Victor."</p>

<p>The President asked him, "Of what nation art thou,
Tharacus?"</p>

<p>He answered, "Of the noble nation of the Romans, and was born
at Claudianopolis, a city in Syria; but being a Christian I
have abandoned war."</p>

<p>The Proconsul said, "Thou art not worthy of the pay, but how
didst thou leave the service?"</p>

<p>Tharacus replied, "I asked Publius, our General, for
permission, and he discharged .me, "</p>

<p>The President said, "Have regard for thy age, then;ffor I
desire thee , too, to be one of those who obey the commands of
our lords, the emperors; so that thou mayest be promoted by me
to great honors. Come hither, therefore, and sacrifice to our
gods, for the princes themselves, who are the monarchs of the
whole world, honor the gods."</p>

<p>Tharacus answered, "They err grossly; however, they are
seduced by Satan."</p>

<p>The President said, "Smite him on the cheek, because he has
said that the emperors err."</p>

<p>Tharacus replied, ".'Yes, I have said it, and say it still,
that they as men are liable to err."</p>

<p>The President said, "Sacrifice to our .gods, and forsake thy
folly." haracus answered, "I serve my God, and sacrifice to Him:
not with blood, but with a pure heart; for these sacrifices
(namely such as are stained with blood) are unnecessary."</p>

<p>The President said, "I, have pity for thy age; therefore I
admonish thee, to forsake this folly, and sacrifice to the
gods."</p>

<p>Tharacus replied, "I will not depart from the law of the
Lord; and because I honor the law of Cod, I shall beware of
such wickedness."</p>

<p>The President said, "Is there, then, another law besides
this, thou wicked wretch?"</p>

<p>Tharacus answered, "Your law commands to worship wood, stone,
and the work of man."</p>

<p>Tharacus put to <i>the</i> rack.-The Proconsul or President
then said to his hangmen, "Smite him on the neck, and tell him
not to speak such folly."</p>

<p>While they were beating Tharacus, he said, "I shall by no
means abandon this confession, which saves me."</p>

<p>The Proconsul said, "I shall make thee forsake this folly,
and be more prudent."</p>

<p>Tharacus answered, "Do what thou wilt; thou hast full power
over my body."</p>

<p>Maximus, the Proconsul, said to his servants"Strip him, and
scourge him with rods."</p>

<p>Tharacus answered, as he was scourged, "Truly, thou hast made
me more prudent, since by these stripes thou strengthenest me
more and more in my confidence in God and His Anointed, Jesus
Christ, who is His Son."</p>

<p>The President said, "Thou accursed and unrighteous fellow!
how canst thou serve two gods at once? See, now thou dost
certainly confess more than one god. Why then, deniest thou
those whom we worship? Dost thou not confess Christ and the
Lord?"</p>

<p>Tharacus answered, "Yea, I do; for He is the Son of God, the
hope of all Christians, for whose sake we are wounded, and
healed."</p>

<p>The President said, "Leave off this useless babbling; come
hither, and sacrifice.", "I do not say much," replied Tharacus,"but I speak the
truth; for I am now sixty-five years old, and have believed
thus, and do not desire to depart from the truth."</p>

<p>Demetrius, the Centurion, said, "0 wretched man! spare
thyself, sacrifice, and follow my advice."</p>

<p>Tharacus answered, "Depart from me, thou servant of Satan,
with thy advice."</p>

<p>Maximus commanded them, to put heavy iron chains on him, and
take him back to prison, and to bring forth another.</p>

<p>Probus, <i>examined.-Demetrius, the</i> Captain said, "Lord,
here is one already."</p>

<p>Thereupon the President said to Probus, "Tell me first thy
name."</p>

<p>Probus . answered, "In the first place, my noblest name is,
that I am a Christian; secondly, men call me Probus."</p>

</div><div id="148"> 

<p>The Proconsul asked again, "Of what nation and descent art
thou?"</p>

<p>Probus replied, "My father was from Thracia, a citizen, born
at Pergamus, in Pamphilia; but I am a Christian."</p>

<p>The Proconsul said, "Thou shalt not gain much by this name;
but listen to me, and sacrifice to the gods; that thou mayest
be honored by the princes, and be our friend."</p>

<p>Probus answered, "I desire neither honor from the emperors
nor thy friendship; for not small was the wealth which I
forsook, in order faithfully to serve the living God."</p>

<p>The Proconsul commanded them, to take his cloak off him,
strip him, rack .him, and scourge him with raw thongs. While
they scourged him, Demetrius, the captain, said, "O wretched
man! behold, how thy blood is spilled upon the earth."</p>

<p>Probus replied, "My body is in your hands; but all these
torments are a precious balm to me."</p>

<p>After he was scourged, the Proconsul said to him, "Thou
wretch I wilt thou not yet cease from thy folly? and dost thou
still persist in thy obstinacy?"</p>

<p>Probus answered, "I am not vain, but more courageous in the
Lord, than you people are."</p>

<p>The President said to his servants, "Turn him over, and
scourge him on his stomach."</p>

<p>Probus prayed, saying, "O Lord, come and succor thy
servant."</p>

<p>Maximus, the Proconsul, said to the executioners, "While you
scourge him, ask him, saying: 'Where is thy .helper?"'</p>

<p>Probus replied as they scourged him, "He has helped -me, and
shall still help me."</p>

<p>The President said, "Thou wretched man! do spare thine own
body; for the earth is soaked with thy blood."</p>

<p>Probus answered, "Be assured, the more my body suffers for
the name of Christ, the more my soul is healed and
quickened."</p>

<p>After he had been thus scourged and tortured, the Proconsul
commanded them to fetter his hands and feet with irons, and
thus keep him in prison; however to bring before him
another.</p>

<p><i>Andyonicus</i> examined.-Demetrius, the Centurion, placed
Andronicus before Maximus' judgment seat, saying, "Sir, here is
the third one."</p>

<p>The Proconsul said, "What is thy name?"</p>

<p>Andronicus answered, "Wouldst thou openly know who I am? I am
a Christian."</p>

<p>Maximus said, "Those who have preceded thee have gained
nothing by this name; therefore thou must answer me
aright."</p>

<p>Andronicus replied, "Men generally call me Andronicus."</p>

<p>Maximus asked him of what nationality he was.</p>

<p>Andronicus answered, "Of noble blood."</p>

<p>Maximus said, "Spare thyself, and hearken to me, as to thy
father; for those who have prated such nonsense before thee
have gained nothing by it. But honor thou the princes and the
fathers, and be obedient to our gods."</p>

<p>Andronicus replied, "Thou didst well call them fathers; for
thou art of the father, the devil, and, having become one of
his children, thou doest his works."</p>

<p>Maximus said, "Wilt thou, a stripling, despise and mock me?
Knowest thou not, what torments are ready for thee?"</p>

<p>Andronicus said, "Dost thou think I am a fool, that I should
be willing to be found inferior to my predecessors, in
suffering? I stand prepared to endure all thy torments."</p>

<p>The Proconsul commanded that he should be stripped,
ungirded, and suspended to the torturestake. Demetrius, the
Captain, moved by pity, said, "Listen to me, wretched man,
before thy body be racked."</p>

<p>Andronicus answered, "It is better that my body perish, than
that thou shouldst do with my soul according to thy
pleasure."</p>

<p>Maximus said, "Take advice, and sacrifice, before thou be
tortured to death."</p>

<p>Andronicus replied, "Never from my youth up did I sacrifice,
and do still not wish to do so, though thou constrain me."</p>

<p>Maximus said, "Lay on and rack him well."</p>

<p>Anaximus, the horn-blower, who was to execute the sentence,
spoke to Andronicus, saying, "I am old enough to be thy father;
I advise thee to the best: do what the Proconsul commands
thee."</p>

<p>Andronicus replied, "Because thou art older, and hast no
understanding, therefore thou advisest me to sacrifice to
stones and evil spirits.</p>

<p>While he was being tormented, the Proconsul said, "Thou
wretched man I Dost thou not feel any torments, seeing thou
hast no compassion upon thyself, and dost not forsake thy
folly, which cannot save thee?"</p>

<p>Andronicus answered, "My sincere confession, which thou
callest a vain folly, is perfectly good, as putting all hope
and confidence upon the Lord our God; but thy temporal wisdom
shall die forever."</p>

<p>The President asked, "Who is it that has taught thee this
folly?"</p>

<p>Andronicus replied, "The quickening word, by which we are
quickened, teaches us that our Lord is in heaven, who works in
our hearts the living hope of our blessed resurrection from the
dead."</p>

<p>Maximus said, "Desist from this folly -before we torture thee
still more severely."</p>

<p>Andronicus answered, "My body is before thee; thou hast full
power over it; do as it pleaseth thee."</p>

<p>The Proconsul said, "Torture him exceedingly on the
mouth."</p>

<p>Andronicus replied, "The Lord sees that you punish me even as
a murderer."</p>

<p>The President said, "Dost thou still despise the commands of
the princes? and thinkest thou my tribunal is without
power?"</p>

</div><div id="149"> <br />
 

<p>Andronicus answered, "I trust in the mercy and truth of God's
promise, and therefore i suffer all this patiently."</p>

<p>Maximus asked, "Have, then, the princes transgressed, thou
wretched man?"</p>

<p>Andronicus replied, "Yes, according as I understand it, they
have; for it is a transgression to sacrifice to idols."</p>

<p>While he was being tormented, the Proconsul said, "Turn him
over, and torment him on his sides."</p>

<p>Andronicus said, "I am before you. Torment me as you
please."</p>

<p>The President said to the executioners, "Take potsherds, and
scrape open the old wounds."</p>

<p>When they had done this, Andranicus said, "You have
strengthened my body by these torments."</p>

<p>Maximus said, "Ere long I shall exterminate thee; ere long I
shall kill thee."</p>

<p>Andronicus answered, "I do not fear thy threats; my
sentiments are better than all thy wicked thoughts."</p>

<p>Then the Proconsul commanded that irons should be put on his
neck and feet, and he be kept with the others until the second
examination.</p>

<h2>SECOND EXAMINATION OF THE THREE AFORE MENTIONED CHRISTIANS</h2> 

<p>When Maximus held court the second time over these faithful
witnesses of Jesus Christ, and sat upon his judgment seat, he
said, "Call in the ungodly Christians." Demetrius the captain,
answered, "Here I am, my lord!" Then said the Proconsul to
Tharacus, "Knowest thou not, that age is honored in many
respects? Hast thou, then, not considered it, whether thou wilt
still persist in thy first intention? Yea, advise with thyself,
and sacrifice to the gods, for the prosperity of the princes;
that thou mayest attain to honor."</p>

<p>Tharacus answered, "If the princes and others who are of the
same opinion with you, knew what there is in this honor, they
themselves would turn away from the blindness of their'vain
conversation."</p>

<p><i>Tharacus put on the rack the second</i> time.-The
Proconsul said to his beadles, "Strike him on the</p>

</div><div id="150"> 

<p>mouth with stones, and say to him: Desist from thy folly."
Tharacus answered, "If I did not exercise more care for my
salvation than you people do, I would be as foolish as you
are."</p>

<p>The President said to him, "See, they have knocked thy teeth
out; do have compassion upon thyself."</p>

<p>Tharacus replied, "Do not imagine this; for though thou
shouldest cause everyone of my members to be crushed, I could
still remain strong and steadfast in Him who strengthens
me."</p>

<p>The President said, "Believe me, it is better for thee, that
thou sacrifice."</p>

<p>Tharacus answered, "If I knew that it were better for me, I
would not wait for this advice from thee."</p>

<p>When Tharacus ceased to speak, the Proconsul said to his
hangmen, "Smite him on the mouth and make him speak."</p>

<p>Tharacus replied, "My cheeks are knocked to pieces; how can I
answer any longer?"</p>

<p>Maximus said, "And wilt thou, madman, not yet consent to
worship, and sacrifice to the gods?"</p>

<p>Tharacus answered, "Although thou hast deprived me of my
voice, so that I cannot cry aloud, thou shalt nevertheless not
injure my soul; but thou hast in this hour greatly strengthened
me in my opinion."</p>

<p>Maximus said to his servants, "Bring fire! stretch out his
hands, and put fire on them."</p>

<p>Tharacus replied, "I do not fear thy temporal fire; but I
would have to fear eternal fire, if I should obey thee."</p>

<p>When the glowing fire was laid upon his hands, the President
said, "See, the fire is consuming thy hands; desist, therefore,
from thy folly and sacrifice to the gods."</p>

<p>Tharacus answered, "Thou speakest to me, as though because of
thy cruelty I had already yielded to thy wish; however, but
through the grace of God I am, in all my sufferings, as strong
as ever."</p>

<p>The Proconsul said, "Tie his feet together, and hang him up
by his heels, and make a thick smoke under his face."</p>

<p>Tharacus replied, "I neither regard thy fire, nor do I fear
thy smoke."</p>

<p>When he was hung up, Maximus said to him, "There shalt thou hang, until thou consentest to sacrifice
to the gods."</p>

<p>Tharacus answered, "Thou mayest sacrifice; for thou art
accustomed to sacrifice human beings; but for me it is not
lawful."</p>

<p>Maximus said to his servants, "Bring vinegar mixed with salt,
and pour it into his nostrils."</p>

<p>NOTE.-Here a whole leaf is wanting in the original, namely,
of the tortures which Tharacus, Probus, and Andronicus suffered
in the second examination on the rack; however, concerning
Andronicus the following additional was found.</p>

<p>The Proconsul said (namely, to Andronicus), "All this
nonsense can avail thee nothing. But come, and sacrifice to the
gods, that thou mayest not perish under the punishment."</p>

<p>Andronicus replied, "It is the same that thou hast heard the
first and the second time; for I am not a child, to be moved or
turned by words."</p>

<p>The President said, "You shall nevertheless neither conquer
me, nor despise my tribunal."</p>

<p>Andronicus answered, "We do not conquer thee, but our Lord
Jesus Christ strengthens us."</p>

<p>The President said, "The next time we hold court over these
men, let other modes of torture be put in practice. In the
meantime put him (Andronicus) in irons, and keep him in prison
until tomorrow, and let no one see him."</p>

<h2>THE THREE MARTYRS EXAMINED ON THE RACK THE THIRD TIME</h2> 

<p>The President said, "Call the ungodly Christians in."
Demetrius, the centurion, answered, "Here I am."</p>

<p><i>Tharacus brought forth</i> first.-When he had brought
forth Tharacus, the Proconsul said, "Dost thou still despise
imprisonment, bonds, punishments, and tortures? Follow my
advice, O Tharacus, and abandon this confession, which profits
thee nothing. Rather sacrifice to the gods, by whom all things
exist."</p>

<p>Tharacus answered, "Woe shall come upon them. Thou thinkest
that the world is governed by them; whereas they are destined
for eternal fire; and not they only, but all those also who
serve them."</p>

<p>The President said, "And dost thou not yet desist, thou
impious blasphemerl or thinkest thou not that for thy rash
words I should cause thee to be instantly beheaded?"</p>

<p>Tharacus replied, "Then I would not die a lingering death,
but a short one. But let me have a long conflict, that in the
meantime my faith in the Lord may grow and increase."</p>

<p>The President said, "Thou and thy fellow prisoners must die
according to the laws."</p>

<p>Tharacus answered, "What thou sayest is an evidence of thy
ignorance; for those who do evil die justly; but we who know of
no evil, that is, who have committed nothing worthy of death
before men, but suffer for the Lord, expect with confident hope
the heavenly reward from the Lord."</p>

<p>The Proconsul said, "Thou accursed miscreant! what reward
have ye to expect, seeing you die for your wickedness?"</p>

<p>Tharacus replied, "It is not lawful for thee to inquire into,
or to ask, what reward the Lord has laid up for us in heaven;
and therefore we patiently suffer the wrath of thy
madness."</p>

<p>The President said, "Direst thou thus address me, thou
accursed [one], as though thou wert mine equal?"</p>

<p>Tharacus answered, "I am not thine equal; but it is lawful
for me to speak, and no one can silence</p>

</div><div id="151"> 

<p>me, for the sake of Him who strengthens me, namely, .the
Lord."</p>

<p>The Proconsul said, "Thou miscreant, I shall deprive thee of
the power."</p>

<p>Tharacus answered, "No one can take away the power from me,
neither thou, nor your princes, nor Satan, the father of you
all."</p>

<p><i>Tharacus put to the</i> rack.-The President said, "Now,
seeing thou .art bound and suspended, in order that you may be
.tortured, sacrifice in time, before I cause thee to be
punished according to thy deserts."</p>

<p>Tharacus replied, "That thou mayest do; but since I was
formerly a soldier, thou mayest not torment me with all manner
of punishment. Yet, lest thou think, I might yield to thy
perverseness, go on and devise and inflict upon me all sorts of
punishment."</p>

<p>The President said, "Do not think that I shall sentence thee
at once. I shall cause thee to be put to death by degrees."</p>

<p>Tharacus answered, "Whatever thou intendest to do, do at
once, and do not threaten."</p>

<p>The President said, "If thou think, that some women will come
and embalm thy body, thou art greatly mistaken, for it is my
intention that nothing shall remain of thee."</p>

<p>Tharacus replied, "Do with my body as pleaseth thee, now as
well as after my death.", "Maximian," said the Proconsul,"break his jaws, and tear his
lips."</p>

<p>Tharacus answered, "True, thou hast crushed and marred my
face; but thou hast quickened my soul."</p>

<p>The President said, "Thou wretched man! Desist f rom thy vain
thoughts, and sacrifice; that thou mayest be delivered from
these pangs."</p>

<p>Tharacus replied, "Dost thou .think I am a fool or a madman,
and that I, who trust in the Lord, shall not live in heaven?
Thou mayest deprive me of this temporal life for a little
while; but thou wilt thereby cast thine own soul into eternal
damnation."</p>

<p>The President said to the executioners, "Put the branding
irons into the fire, and brand him on his cheeks or
shoulders."</p>

<p>Tharacus answered, "Though thou inflict many more torments
than these upon me, thou shalt nevertheless not turn the
servant of God to the shameful idolatry of devils, to worship
them."</p>

<p>The President said, "Bring a razor; cut off his skin; shave
his head bald, and put burning coals upon it."</p>

<p>Tharacus replied, "And though thou cause my whole body to be
flayed, I shall still not depart from my God., who strengthens
me, to endure all the weapons of your torturing."</p>

<p>The President said, "Get the branding irons; let them get
still hotter, and apply them to all his members and
joints."</p>

<p>Tharacus, as he suffered this, cried out."May the Lord look
down from heaven, and judge!" he President said, "What lord dost
thou call upon, thou accursed fellow?"</p>

<p>Tharacus answered, "The Lord whom thou dost not know, and who
recompenses every one according to his works."</p>

<p>The President said, "And shall I not exterminate thee, as I
have told thee? Yea, even thy remains I shall burn, and scatter
thy ashes to the wind; that the women may not come, and wind
thy dead body in cloth to embalm it with precious ointments and
spices."</p>

<p>Tharacus replied, "I have said it, and say so still, do what
thou wilt: thou hast full power over my body in this
world."</p>

<p>The President said, "Put him back into prison, and keep him
until the next time for the wild beasts. Let another be brought
before the tribunal."</p>

<p><i>Probus brought</i> foward.-Demetrius, the captain, said
to the Proconsul, "Sir, here he is already, namely, Probus."</p>

<p>The President said to Probus, "Advise with thyself, Probus,
that thou mayest not fall again into the same punishment; for
others, who on thy account have persisted in their obstinacy
have rued it. Sacrifice now, therefore, that thou mayest be
honored by us and the gods."</p>

<p>Probus answered, "We are all of one mind, serving God with
one heart and soul. Think not, therefore, that thou wilt hear
anything different from us; for thou hast ere this heard and
seen enough to convince thee, that thou canst not turn us. Here
I stand before thee the third time, and do not yet regard thy
threats. What dost thou wait for, then?"</p>

<p>The President said, "Ye have conspired together to deny the
gods. Bind him, and hang him up by his heels."</p>

<p>Probus replied, "Dost thou not yet cease to fight for
Satan?"</p>

<p>Maximus said, "Believe me, before thou be tortured; have
compassion upon thine own body. See, what dreadful torments are
being prepared for thee."</p>

<p>Probus answered, "All that thou mayest do unto me, shall
conduce to the comfort of my soul; therefore, do what thou
wilt."</p>

<p>The President said, "Heat the branding irons red-hot, and
apply them, to his sides, so that he may desist from his
folly."</p>

<p>Probus replied, "The more foolish I appear to thee, the wiser
I shall be in the law of the Lord."</p>

<p>The President said, "Press the branding irons on his
back."</p>

<p>Probus answered as he was suffering, "My body is subject to
thy power; but God will behold from heaven my humility and
patience."</p>

<p>In the meantime the President commanded that meat and wine
should be brought, which had been sacrificed .to the idols,
saying to the executioners, "Pour wine down his throat, and take meat, and force it into
his mouth."</p>

</div><div id="152"> 

<p>While they were busy doing this, Probus said, "The Lord
behold from His high throne the violence ye do to me, and judge
my cause."</p>

<p>The President said, "Thou wretched manl thou hast suffered so
much, and, behold I thou hast thyself received the
sacrifice."</p>

<p>Probus replied, "Ye have not accomplished much, by doing me
violence. The Lord knoweth my intentions."</p>

<p>The President said, "Thou hast eaten and drank what was
sacrificed to the gods."</p>

<p>Probus answered, "The Lord knoweth it, and hath seen the
violence I have suffered."</p>

<p>The President said to the executioners, "Apply the branding
irons to the calves of his legs: '</p>

<p>Probus replied, "Neither the fire, nor the torments, nor thy
father, Satan, can turn the servant of God from his
confession."</p>

<p>The President said to his servants, "Let sharp nails be
heated, and put them into his hands."</p>

<p>Probus answered as he suffered this, "I thank Thee, O Lord,
that Thou hast made my hands worthy, to suffer for Thy
name."</p>

<p>The President said, "The many torments have deprived thee of
thy mind."</p>

<p>Probus replied, "The great power which thou hast, has not
only made thee a fool, but also blind; for thou knowest not
what thou art doing."</p>

<p>The President said, "Thou who hast been tormented on thy
whole body excepting the eyes, darest thou speak thus to
me?""Pinch his eyes," said he to the executioners,"that he may
gradually become blind."</p>

<p>When this had been done, Probus said, "Behold, thou hast also
deprived me of my bodily eyes, but thou shalt never be
permitted to destroy the eyes of my faith."</p>

<p>The President said, "Dost thou think thou wilt survive all
these torments, or that thus thou shalt die happy?"</p>

<p>Probus answered, "Fighting thus, I gradually approach the
end, so that I may finish my good and perfect confession, and
be put to death by you without mercy."</p>

<p>The President said, "Take him away, bind him, put him in
pr~on, and let none of his companions come near hind, to praise
him for having continued so steadfast in his wickedness. He,
too, shall be cast before the wild beasts at the next
show."</p>

<p><i>Andronicus put to the</i> rack.-Then said the
President, "Let Andronicus come forth."</p>

<p>Demetrius, the captain, said, "He is already here."</p>

<p>The President said to Andronicus, "Have at least compassion
on thy youth, if thou hast prudently advised with thyself to
reverence the gods</p>

<p>consent and sacrifice to the gods, that thou mayest be
released.</p>

<p>Andronicus answered, "May God never suffer thee, O tyrant,
that I do aught against the law of God. Thou shalt never shake
my good confession, which I have founded upon my Lord. Here I
stand ready, for thee to make manifest on me thy hardness."</p>

<p>The President said, "Methinks, thou art raving, and possessed
of the devil."</p>

<p>Andronicus replied, "If I had the devil in me, I should obey
thee; but because I confess the Lord, I do not submit to ,the
commands of the devil. But hast not thou the devil in thee?
For, being deceived by the devil, thou doest the works of the
devil."</p>

<p>The President said to the Executioners, "Make bundles of:
paper, and put fire upon his body."</p>

<p>When this was done, Andronicus said, "Though I burn from head
to foot, the spirit nevertheless is alive in me. Thou shalt not
conquer me; for the Lord, whom I serve is with me."</p>

<p>The President said, "Thou madman! how long wilt thou remain
thus obstinate? Seek at least to die upon thy bed."</p>

<p>Andronicus answered, "As long as I live, I shall overcome thy
wickedness."</p>

<p>The President said, "Heat the branding irons red-hot again,
and put them between his fingers."</p>

<p>Andronicus replied, "O foolish despiser of God I Thou art
full of the wicked thoughts of Satan. Scest thou not that my
body is almost consumed through the manifold torments thou hast
inflicted upon me. Thinkest thou that now at .the last I shall
begin to fear thy devices? I have Christ dwelling in my heart,
and despise thy torments."</p>

<p>The President said, "Thou miscreant! knowest thou not that
this Christ, whom thou worshipest became man, and was punished
under the judge Pontius Pilate?"</p>

<p>Andronicus answered, "Be silent, for it is not lawful for
thee to speak evil of Him."</p>

<p>The President said, "What gainest thou by thy faith and hope
in this man whom thou callest Christ?"</p>

<p>Andronicus replied, "I have thereby in expectation a great
reward and gain; hence I endure all this so patiently."</p>

<p>The President said, "Break open his mouth, and take meat that
has been sacrificed, from the altar, and force it into his
mouth, and pour in wine also."</p>

<p>Andronicus called God to witness, saying, "O Lord I Lord I
behold, what violence I suffer!"</p>

<p>The President said, "How long wilt thou thus obstinately
endure the punishment? See, thou hast certainly eaten of that
which has been sacrificed to the gods."</p>

<p>Andronicus answered, "Cursed be all who honor the idols, thou
and thy princes."</p>

<p>The President said, "Thou miscreant, cursest thou the
princes, who have obtained for us so lasting and tranquil
peace?"</p>

</div><div id="153"> 

<p>Andronicus replied, "They are cursed, who, as the pestilence,
and as bloodhounds, turn the whole world upside down; whom the
Lord by His mighty arm shall confound and destroy."</p>

<p>The President commanded the executioners, "Put an iron into
his mouth, and with it break out all his teeth, and cut out his
blasphemous tongue, that he may learn no more to blaspheme the
princes. Take away his teeth, and burn his tongue to ashes, and
scatter the latter all about, lest his fellow Christians, or
some women, gather his remains, and keep them as precious
relics. Take him away from here, and put him into prison, that
at the next show he, together with his companions, Tharacus and
Probus may be thrown before the wild beasts." <i>Acta Procons.
per Metaph. and alios.</i></p>

<p>It is declared that the above account concerning the
examination of the three afore-mentioned Christians was written
entirely by the heathen themselves, who put them to death; only
a few words having been altered, to make the sense clearer. A
certain celebrated author mentioning this, writes as
follows, "Herewith ends the third examination or inquisition on
the rack, and thus far these proceedings with the martyrs have
been recorded by the heathen clerk of the criminal court
himself, and were doubtless afterwards bought for money by the
Christians."</p>

<p>Beloved reader I I could not forbear to translate these
records, just as they were, for the most part word for word;
not only because I have found them to be true and genuine in
every respect; but also, because we can very clearly see
therefrom, what form of inquisition or examination the heathen
employed against the Christians; as well as with what manifold
torments the obdurate heathen sought to compel the Christians
to apostatize from the faith, and how remarkably God preserved
His own against the devices and wiles of the devil.</p>

<p>It need not seem strange to the reader, that the proconsul
or criminal judges so frequently put to the rack the same
Christians, to cause them to apostatize from the faith; for
Lactantius tells us of a president in Bithynia, who for two
years endeavored by all manner of torments to compel a
Christian to apostatize, and who, when this Christian finally
seemed to yield, boasted of it just as though he had conquered
a whole province of a barbaric country.</p>

<p>As touching the rest of the matter, that is, how and when
the sentence of the Proconsul was executed, the heathen have
not recorded it; but some Christian brethren, namely, Macarius,
Felix, and Verus, probably bought those records from the clerk
of the criminal court, and added from their own observation
what was wanting, since they had been eyewitnesses of it at the
theatrical drama the following day.</p>

<h2>AN ACCOUNT OF THE DEATH OF THE AFOREMENTIONED MARTYRS, WRITTEN BY SOME CHRISTIAN BRETHREN WHO WITNESSED IT</h2> 

<p>Numerius Maximus, Proconsul of Cilicia, summoning Terentian,
the provider of public sacrifices and theatrical performances
which were held in Cilicia, commanded him to provide for the
dramas for the next day. The following day a great number of
men and women assembled in the amphitheatre, which was situated
about a mile or one thousand paces from the city. When the
amphitheatre was filled with people, Maximus also came to
witness the play, and in the first act of it, when many wild
beasts were let out at the same time, many human bodies were
devoured. We Christians kept ourselves concealed and waited
with great fear for the bringing forth of the martyrs. Suddenly
the Proconsul commanded the soldiers to bring in the Christian
martyrs, namely, Tharacus, Probus, and Andronicus. The soldiers
compelled some to carry the Christian martyrs on their
shoulders, for they were torn and lacerated to such a degree,
that they could not walk. We then saw them carried thus
disfigured into the amphitheatre, and seeing how they had been
maltreated, we turned our faces, and cried bitterly. Thus the
martyrs were thrown down into the middle of the arena, as the
ofiscouring or refuse of this world; and when the multitude
beheld them, they were all frightened, and the people murmured
greatly against Maximus for having thus tormented them, and
then yet sentencing them to be thrown to the beasts; yea, many
went away from the amphitheatre, censuring Maximus for his
inhuman cruelty. When Maximus saw this, he commanded the
soldiers who stood near him, to note those who murmured against
him, and were leaving; so that he might afterwards examine them
in regard to it. In the meantime he commanded that the wild
beasts should be let out, to rend the martyrs. In <i>Scriptura
Christianorum Fratrum.</i></p>

<p>In order to avoid prolixity, we shall sum up what follows
here in the afore-mentioned account of the Christian brethren,
in these words, "The wild beasts were let out, especially a
frightful bear, and then a lioness; both of which indeed, by
roaring terribly, made a dreadful noise, so that also the
spectators were frightened by it; but they did not harm the
martyrs, much less tear or devour them. The Proconsul in his
rage commanded the spearmen, to thrust the bear through; the
lioness, however, on account of the fear of the people,
was let out by a back door, which was broken in pieces. Then
Maximus ordered Terentian, to let in the gladiators, who should
first kill the Christians, and then fight with each other for
life. These, when they came in, first thrust through the
martyrs; which happened on the 11th day of October, A. D. 290,
at Tarsus in Cilicia." When the drama was over, and the
Proconsul was about to go home,</p>

</div><div id="154"> 

<p>he left ten soldiers in the amphitheatre, charging them, to
mingle the dead bodies of the martyrs with those of the heathen
gladiators, that the Christians might not be able to
distinguish them. However, it is stated in the above account,
that the Christians removed their dead bodies, and buried them
in a cave in a rock.</p>

<p>In regard to this, A. Mellinus, who has referred to it, has
the following remark, "They who did this, also wrote the
conclusion of this history; hence we have not the least reason
to doubt the veracity of this account of the proceedings
against the martyrs." <i>First book of the Mart. 1619, fol. 96,
col. 1;</i> but with reference to the previous proceedings
against the martyrs, see fol.<i>-</i> 93, col. 3, and
<i>fol.</i> 94, col. 1-4, <i>fol.</i> 95, col. 1-3.</p><br />

<br />

  <h1>AN ACCOUNT OF THE HOLY BAPTISM OF THE MARTYRS IN THE FOURTH CENTURY</h1>

<h2>BRIEF SUMMARY OF BAPTISM IN THIS CENTURY</h2> 

<p>At the close of the third century the eminent Arnobius was
introduced, and inasmuch as his life extended from one century
into the other we refer to him again here in the beginning of
the fourth century. He speaks of the virtue and benefit of
baptism, as may be seen in the proper place.</p>

<p>Fusca and the handmaid Maura were baptized after previous
instruction.</p>

<p>At this time (in the time of Sylvester) there existed such
sects as were afterwards called Waldenses, Anabaptists,
etc.</p>

<p>One Donates was called an Anabaptist, and his followers,
Anabaptists.</p>

<p>Athanasius, while yet a child, indicated, with other
children, that at Alexandria they baptized upon confession of
faith.</p>

<p>In Canon 12, 13, 15, of the Council of Nice several good
things are established with regard to baptism.</p>

<p>Athanasius, having become a man, teaches wholesome doctrine,
not only with respect to baptism, but also in regard to other
matters of religion.</p>

<p>Soon after him comes Marius Victorinus, who joins together
faith, confession, and baptism.</p>

<p>Then appears Hilarius, who wrote very appropriately on
baptism, and also opposes antichrist, images, and
traditions.</p>

<p>Monica, the mother of Augustine, was baptized in adult
years, though she was born of Christian parents.</p>

<p>In the Council of Neocesarea, the candidates for baptism,
the baptizing of pregnant women, Christ's baptism, etc., were
discussed.</p>

<p>Again sects appear, who were like the Baptists.</p>

<p>St. Martin was instructed from his twelfth to his eighteenth
year, and then baptized. He strongly opposed war.</p>

<p>Ambrose was baptized in adult years, at Milan. though his
parents were Christians. He advanced sound views on baptism,
against war, of the sacraments, etc.</p>

<p>Ephrem, Gregory of Nyssa, the Councils of Laodicea and
Elibertum, and also Optatus Milevitanus, give correct views on
baptism.</p>

<p>Gregory of Nazianzus, born of Christian parents, was already
in his twentieth year when he was baptized. Nectarius was
baptized in adult years. Basil, the son of a Christian, and
Eubulus, consulted together, and were baptized on their faith,
at Jerusalem. Posthumanius made a glorious confession at his
baptism. John Chrysostom was suffered by his parents, though
they were Christians, to remain unbaptized, not receiving
baptism until he was twenty-one years old. Also, his views
respecting baptism; his teaching against war, confession,
etc.</p>

<p>Jerome, also born of Christian parents, was baptized at
Syridon, when he was thirty years old.</p>

<p>Augustine, Adeolatus, Alipius, Euodius, Epiphanies, with his
sister, all baptized upon faith. Conclusion of baptism. in the
fourth century.</p>

<p>That the holy order of the baptism of Jesus Christ was
practiced also in the fourth century, appears from various
teachings and examples of the fathers, from which, we shall
present only a few, but such as are certain and genuine
testimonies.</p>

<p>A. D. 301.-At the close of the preceding century, for A. D.
300, we introduced the eminent Arnobius, and showed that,
speaking of baptism, he says, "That the candidates for baptism,
when they are baptized, state before the minister their perfect
willingness, and make their confession with their own
lips."</p>

<p>This Arnobius follows us also in the beginning of this
century, namely through the years 301, 302, 303, 304; and
having not abandoned his previous views regarding this matter,
he confirms them with the following testimonies.</p>

<p>Speaking against the tenets of the Romanists, who ordain
consecrated, or, properly speaking, exorcised water for
baptism, he writes thus (in Psalm 74), "It is written: Thou
breakest the heads of the dragons in the waters; that is," says
he,"the heads of the dragons in baptism;" but by saying, <i>in
the 'waters,</i> he means to signify that the same baptism can
be administered in all kinds of waters, as, in rivers, lakes,
wells, baths, seas, etc. In these the head of the dragon, that
is Satan, is broken in all waters. <i>Jacob Mehrn. Ba:cent;t.
Hist., page 323.</i></p>

<p>Of the virtue and benefit of baptism be teaches as follows,
Psalm <i>32,</i> where the Psalmist says, "In the floods of great waters they shall not come nigh unto
him," upon which he remarks, "that men, by the true water of
baptism, draw nigh to God, who is a refuge from- the fear of
Satan that encompasses us." <i>Jacob Mehrn., page 324.</i></p>

<p>Again, Psalm <i>32,</i> he says, "Man is redeemed; no angel,
nor any other creature, but man alone praises his mercy, says
the Lord, whose sins He forgives in baptism." <i>Jacob Mehrn.,
page 325.</i></p>

</div><div id="155"> 

<p>Although these words of Arnobius are somewhat obscure, yet
they contain light- enough, to emit rays of divine truth
concerning the matter of baptism. For when in the first place
he says, that the head of the dragon is broken in baptism. (by
dragon meaning Satan), he certainly indicates thereby, that he
speaks of persons who, having attained maturer years, become
subject to the as-, saults of Satan, and that these, in
baptism, break the head of the dragon, that is, Satan, by means
of the true faith, through Christ; hence he does not speak of
children-who are ignorant of the assaults of Satan-and,
consequently, not of infant baptism.</p>

<p>Secondly, when he says that men, by the true waiter of
baptism, draw nigh to God, he certainly indicates that he
speaks of men who have departed from God through disobedience,.
consequently; of persons who have arrived at the years .of
discretion; and not of infants; for how can. any one draw nigh
to God by baptism, who has not departed from Him? Infants have
not departed from God through disobedience; hence they cannot
draw nigh to Him by baptism.</p>

<p>Thirdly, when he speaks of man, who praises the mercy of the
Lord, and whose sins the Lord forgives in baptism, he certainly
indicates .that he, speaks of men who are capable of praising
the mercy of the Lord, namely, men possessing under standing,
and who have sinned; for only he that has sinned can have his
sins forgiven; but with infants, who have never sinned, no
forgiveness can. take place, and consequently, no baptism for
the remission of sins. By this the obscure words of Arnobius
became clear.</p>

<p>NOTE.-P. J. Twisck records, for .the year 306, that
Constantine the Great, the son of the believing Helena, was
baptized in Jordan, .in the sixtyfifth year of his age, after
having been, instructed <i>(Chron. 4th book, page</i> 89,
col.,1); from which it is apparent, that at that time
Christians left their children unbaptized, in order that they
themselves might believe and be baptized.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 308.-Fusca, the pious maiden, conceived a
desire for the Christian faith when she was quite young, and,
having manifested this desire to the servant maid, Mauro, who
also felt an inward drawing toward Christ, they were thoroughly
instructed in the Christian f aith at Ravenna, . by the teacher
Hermola, and baptized. P. J. <i>Tzerisck, Chron. 4th book,
page</i> 90, eol. 1, from <i>Grond. Bew. letter B, Leonh., lib.
2.</i></p>

<p><i>A.</i> D. 315.-It is stated that already in the time of
Sylvester, there was taught and maintained the same doctrine
which was afterwards maintained by countless numbers of the
baptistic Waldenses, yea, that those churches which in the
11th, 12th; 13th, and in subsequent centuries were styled
Waldenses Albigenses, and lastly, Mennonites, or Anabaptists,
had existed already at that time, and indeed, long before. Of
this a certain celebrated author among the Romanists bitterly
complains, in a very old book, saying, "These heretics (the
people mentioned above) have always had many sects among them;
but of all that ever existed, none was more pernicious to the
church of God (understand the Roman church) than the <i>Poor of
Lyons</i> (the Waldenses.orAnabaptists), and this for three
reasons: In the.first place, because of their antiquity; some
asserting that they existed already in the days of Sylvester,
others referring them even to the time of the apostles."
<i>Jac.. Mehrn., page 615.</i></p>

<p>In another place Jacob Mehrning writes thus about the
above-mentioned people, "This is not a new sect that originated
only at that time (that is, in the time of Waldus); for the
papistic writers themselves confess that they existed already
in the time of Pope Sylvester, nay, long before him, even in
the time of the apostles." <i>B. H., page</i> 670. ,</p>

<p>In another place he writes that Flaccius has also recorded
the salve, ,from an ancient papistic book, namely, that they
existed from the time of Sylvester, yea, from the time of the
apostles; and that Thuanus, though he compares them to another
people, states that their doctrine has continued through many
centuries." <i>Page</i> 682.</p>

<p>The time of the reign of Sylvester, who was the first pope
of this name, and on the register of the Roman bishops the
34th, is fixed in the year 315. <i>See P.</i> J. <i>Tze4sck,
Chron., 4th book, p.</i> 93, col. l , <i>from Platina, fol. 63.
Fasc. Temp., fol.</i> 99, <i>Hist. Georg., lib. 1, Fr. Ala.,
fol. 22, Chron. Seb. Fr.,</i> fol. 13.</p>

<p>A. D. 317.-Donatus, an overlearned bishop at Carthage,* who
had many adherents in Africa, taught among other things, "That
the preaching of the divine Word and the administration of the
sacraments by an ungodly minister, were of no avail. They (his
followers) held that the church of Christ existed only among
them, and hence, they rebaptized all who wished to adopt their
religion, saying that the heretics, or the Pope, had no
Christian church, and consequently, no baptism, inasmuch as
there was only one God, one faith, one Gospel, one church, and
one baptism. 'They, like the Anabaptists, also held,' says
Franck, 'that no children, even in the extremity of death,
should be baptized, but only believing adults who desired
it."</p>

<p>When he was imprisoned he upbraided Augustine, saying that
no one ought to be imprisoned on account of his faith, God had
given man his free will, to believe as he chose. Concerning all
this, see, P. J. <i>Tzvisck, Chron., 4th book, p. 93,</i> c'ol.
2, <i>and page 94, col. 1, from Mertda, fol. 255. Zeg.,</i></p>

<br /><cite>* Seb. Franck notes as the time of the
propagation of the doctrine of Donatus the year 334, under the
Emperor Constantine, ' He taught," says Franck,"that the Son is
less than the Father, and the Holy Spirit less than the Son.
This is considered heresy by the Roman church, but when rightly
expounded, it may be correct. For Christ Himself with regard to
His humanity says, "My Father is greater than I" (John 14:28).
And of the Holy Ghost He says: If I depart, I will send him
unto you" (John 16:7); as though the Holy Ghost were less than
Himself. Franck further says; that Donatus was an overlearned
bishop of Carthage, who had come there from Numidia and
maintained that the true and only baptism existed exclusively
in his church and faith.-Chron. Rom. Kett., letter D.</cite> 

</div><div id="156"> 

<p>fol. 79. <i>Seb. Franck, Chron. van de Rooansche' Ketters,
letter D., fol.</i> 76, printed A. D. 1563.</p>

<p>As regards Donatus, if it be true that he erred in some
things, or failed in some matter of faith, we will not defend
him therein; however, this much is certain, that owing to the
absence of his writings, we have no other information
concerning him, than that which comes to us through the mouth
and hand of his adversaries.</p>

<p>Concerning this, P. J. Twisck, in a certain place, expresses
his regret, saying, that in his <i>Chronijk,</i> for the year
410, he wrote something derogatory to his followers, before he
had been properly informed regarding it; which he afterwards,
for the year 417, refutes and explains more clearly by quoting
from Bullinger, "That the followers of Donatus were simular to
the Anabaptists (whom he calls Baptists); that they taught,
that no one ought to be compelled to do good or to accept the
faith." Again, "that every heretic should be left to follow his
particular faith without restraint or compulsion."</p>

<p>On this account, P. J. Twisck, in the same place, relates
from another author, that it is quite probable that these
people were burdened with many unjust accusations."It would be
desirable," writes he,"to have in our possession their
writings, teachings, and deeds; for if it be the case, that
they were in all respects like the Anabaptists, and would
compel no one in matters of faith, then it is sufficiently
apparent, that they are unjustly charged by other writers, with
tyranny. I have given this a place here, because the year 410
was already arranged when this reached me." Thus far, P. J.
<i>Tzerisck, Chron., 5th book, page</i> 147, col. <i>2, from H.
Bulling. Contra Anbapt., lib. 5, fol. 216, 222.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-We accept of the writings of Donatus only that which
is good and true; for the rest we assume no responsibility.</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 318.-It appears that when Athanasius was
yet a boy, at Alexandria also, baptism was not administered
otherwise than upon confession of faith; at least, that it was
not customary to baptize infants, is evident from the following
circumstances of a certain occurrence related by Ruffinus and
Zozomenus, "When the day of the martyr Peter was celebrated at
Alexandria, by the Bishop Alexander, and he, after the solemn
service was over, was awaiting his assistants, or pupils to
dine with him, he observed in the distance some children
playing on the seashore, who, very probably, not for the first
time were imitating the bishop and those things which are
generally done in church. But when he observed the children
more attentively, he noticed that they were performing some
mysterious things. Astonished at this, he summoned his
assistants to him, and showed them what he had seen from a
distance. Then he commanded them to seize the children and
bring them to him. When they came, he asked them, what they had
been playing, and what and how they had been doing? They, as
was natural for their years, at first were frightened, and
denied the matter, but afterwards related it just as it had
taken place, and confessed that they, through Athanasius, who-
in this game had imitated the Bishop, had baptized some
catechumens, that is, boys who had not been baptized. Alexander
then inquired of those who they said had been baptized, what
questions had been put to them, and what they had answered;
likewise interrogating him who had put the questions; and found
that all was in accordance with the manner of our religion.
Jac. <i>Mehrn., 2d part,</i> pp. 356, 357, <i>front Nicephor.,
lib. 8, cap.</i> 44. Also, <i>H. Montan. Nietigh., pp.</i> 64,
65, <i>from Rufin. Eccl. Hist. 1, cap. 14. Zozom. Eccl. Hist.,
lib.</i> 3, <i>cap. 16.</i></p>

<p>From these circumstances it is evident that infant baptism
was not customary there. First, when we take into consideration
the conduct of these boys, we see that in the Christian church
at Alexandria the usual mode of baptizing at that time was
this, namely, that the Bishop, or whoever administered baptism,
first interrogated the candidates for baptism, and then, after
they had answered him, they were baptized.</p>

<p>Secondly, if we consider the boys themselves, who apparently
were ten or twelve years old, which probability is increased by
the fact that Ruffinus (as H. Montanus shows), calls them
catechumens, that is, such as were being instructed in the
faith, which is plainly indicated by their performance, since
they were able to imitate in every particular such important
services. These boys are nevertheless called unbaptized,
wherefore Athanasius, though by way of play, baptized them.</p>

<p>Moreover, that these boys were born of Christian parents,
appears in various ways, as, for instance, in this, that they
diligently attended the Christian assemblies, for without this
they could never have represented so completely in all its
particulars, the baptism practiced in the church. Likewise, in
the fact that Alexander and his assistants (as the account
further sets forth), enjoined the parents of these boys, who
before were unbaptized, but had now been thus baptized, to
bring them up in that vocation, namely, in the Christian
religion, which certainly would not have been done, had their
parents been heathen and not Christians. It is also stated that
this was done with invocation and confession of God's holy
name, which certainly would not have been the case with
heathen, who worshiped either no god, or many gods.</p>

<p>As to what Alexander held of this performance,' we leave it
to its own merits; it suffices us to have shown that at that
time the Christians at Alexandria suffered their children to
remain unbaptized; inasmuch as they were first instructed, and
then baptized upon confession of their faith, which, as has
been shown, is clearly indicated by the course of the
afore-mentioned boys.</p>

<p>A. D. 333.-It is recorded that in the first great council at
Nice, held against Arius, and various</p>

</div><div id="157"> 

<p>innovations in the church, it was resolved among other
things:</p>

<p><i>"Canon 21.</i> The Paulianists and Photinians shall be
rebaptized."</p>

<p><i>"Canon</i> 12. If any apostatize under persecution,
without having been tormented, and sincerely repent, they shall
be put among the catechumens for five years, and after two more
years, shall be reinstated among the faithful, with
prayer."</p>

<p><i>Canon</i> 13. But they who, for the sake of the
confession of the faith, have relinquished the military
profession and again return to it, shall do penance for
thirteen years, and then be received again; however, if they
truly repent, the bishop is authorized to mitigate the term of
penance, provided he sees that their repentance is fruitful and
devout."</p>

<p><i>"Canor.</i> 15. Concerning the catechumens who have
apostatized, it is decided, that they shall be excluded from
the prayers of the catechumens who have not apostatized, for
three years, and at the</p>

<p>end of that time be received back again." <i>Jac. Mehrn.,
pages</i> 352, 353, <i>ex Conch. Nicer. Secund. Ruin.</i></p>

<p>This is the great Council which is extolled as orthodox and
Christian by nearly all so-called Christians. Be this as it
may, we see no reason to praise it so highly, seeing that we
must honor the precepts of God's holy Word alone, whereas the
rules of that council were made by fallible men. Yet, so far as
these men have laid down precepts that accord with the precepts
of God's holy Word, or, at least, do not militate against them,
so far we accept, or, at least, do not oppose them.*</p>

<p>When it is said, in Canon 21, that the Paulianist and
Photinians shall be rebaptized, it establishes, that, according
to the Holy Scriptures, not every baptism is a genuine or true
baptism, and that consequently there is but one baptism which
can in truth be called genuine, namely, that baptism which is
administered by the true church, and upon the true faith. This
is also established at this day b~ the Anabaptists, and
regarded as a precept from t'he holy Word of God.</p>

<p>It is also said in the 15th Canon concerning the
catechumens, that if they have fallen, they shall be excluded
three years from the prayers of those catechumens who have not
fallen. This is an indication of the carefulness exercised by
that assembly, to admit to baptism, according to the doctrine
of the holy Gospel, no unprepared catechumens before they had
truly repented after their fall.</p>

<p>The 12th Canon, speaking of the penance to be performed by
those who, under persecution, had apostatized without having
been tormented; and the 13th Canon, treating of the very great
and long</p>

<br /><cite>* In Canon 2,"Concil. Nicer.," we have the
following, "No one who has recently been received from
heathendom and baptized, shall become an ecclesiastic (that is,
a teacher or bishop). unless he have been very carefully
examined previously."-Bapt. Histor., p. 352, from"Ruffinus";
which quite agrees with Paul's words, I Tim. 3:6, that no
novice shall be ordained to the office of a bishop. penance to
be endured by those, who, after having become Christians, had
resumed the military profession, and thus become apostates;
these precepts we say, militate neither against the holy
Scriptures, nor against the views of the Anabaptists, but
sufficiently confirm them both.</cite> 

<p>NOTE.-It is recorded that at this time pseudoapostles taught
that the church of Rome was rejected of God, and that it was
not His church, but Babylon, and the whore mentioned in the
Apocalypse, who rides the beast with the seven heads; and that
we therefore do not owe obedience to the Pope; that under the
New Testament we are in no wise bound to give tithes to the
priests; that all manner of swearing is unlawful; that a
consecrated church is not better to pray in than a pigsty.
<i>Seb. Fr. Chron., fol.</i> 120, col. 3.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 335.-At this time, Athanasius vigorously
maintained the cause of such as had been baptized according to
order of Christ, against those who, it seems, asserted that
baptism might take place without previous instruction, or
confession of faith. He says (Sean. 3., <i>Contra
Arian.), "Our</i> Saviour did not simply command to baptize, but
first said, <i>teach,</i> and then <i>baptize; so</i> that true
faith may proceed from the doctrine, and then baptism be
perfected with faith." P. <i>J. Twisck, Ch~ron. 4th book, page
99,</i> col. 2; <i>from Grond. Bew., Letter A. Jac. Mehrn.,
BaQt. Hist.,</i> 2d <i>Part, page</i> 370.</p>

<p>NOTE.-At this time Athanasius taught that it is the duty of
every Christian, to read the holy Scriptures, on the 6th chap.
Eph. Again, he prohibited the practice of making a likeness of
God for the purpose of worshiping Him thereby, etc., as being
an unlawful thing. <i>Contr. Gent. Sam. heltius, in the
Geslacht-register, page 118.</i></p>

<p>Notice concerning several writings attributed to
Athanairius.-The pedobaptists, prone to bring forward
everything that seems in anywise to favor their views, were
wont to adduce the 114th and the 124th question of a certain
book called, Various Questions <i>of Holy</i> Scripture,
attributed to Athanasius. But in answer to this we say: that
said book is not the work of Athanasius, but of some other
author who wrote subsequently to him; as in his 23d question he
cites Athanasius as one having lived before him, saying, "This
is the testimony of the great Athanasius, a man who was mighty
in the divine Scriptures; but we, who are enlightened by him."
Moreover, that book contains many opinions foreign to
Athanasius, as shown by the Centuriatores Magdenburgenses,
Cent. 4, cap. 10, p. 1032. See also, H. Montan. Nietigh., p.
69, and J. M., Bapt. Hist., pages 360, 361.</p>

<p>NOTE. A. D. 320.-<i>Lactantius Firmianus</i> taught at this
time: 1."That the sacrifices of the Christian are, a good life,
purity, and good works. 2. That there is no religion in a place
where there are images. <i>Lib.</i> 2, of the Divine
Instruction. Also, Sam, Velti.us, in the Geslacht-register.,
cent;p. 116;</p>

</div><div id="158"> 

<p>117. 3. He taught against compulsion of conscience, and
revenge, as appears from the following. He writes to the
Emperor Constantine (5th <i>book,</i> chap. 20), "The more, the
religion. of God is suppressed, the more it breaks forth and
grows; hence they should employ reasoning and admonition; it is
not necessary to proceed with violence. For religion admits of
no compulsion; persuasive words can do more to promote the
cause than blows." Again (5th book, chap. 21) he writes, "We Christians do not desire that any one should serve God,
the Creator of all, against his will; neither are we angry if
he does not serve Him; for we trust His Majesty, who can as
easily avenge Himself against those who- despise Him, as He
does the vexations and injuries inflicted upon His servants.
Therefore, when we suffer such shameful things, we say not one
word against it, but commit all vengeance to God; not doing as
those who would be regarded protectors of their gods, and very
cruelly assail those who do not worship them." Korte
ontschuldiging, by P. V. K., edition <i>o f</i> 1643, page 47,
<i>front</i> Religions Vryheydt, 22 part, Q. 10.</p>

<p>About A. D. 340. Marius Victorius writes in the fifth book
against Arius, "Everyone that is baptized, and says he believes,
and accepts the faith, receives the Spirit of truth, that is,
the holy Ghost, and is made holier by him." J. <i>Mehrv.,</i>
Bdpt. Hist., page 325. I find in authentic writers, no other
account of baptism by this Marius, so that this seems to be the
only thing he has written about baptism, and from this, too, it
is obvious that he must have been a stranger to infant baptism,
seeing he joins together confession, faith, and baptism, in the
one that is to be baptized.</p>

<p>A. D. 350.-About this time Hilarius attained, to the faith
in Jesus Christ, and having been baptized upon this faith, he
proceeded to defend the truth which he had received and
accepted, and, for the strengthening of the faith he had
,adopted, and that he might live according to the same, he
prayed to God (lib. 12 de Trinit.) as follows, "Dear God,
preserve my faith and the testimony of my conscience, that I
may ever keep that which I confessed in the sacrament of my
regeneration, when I was baptized in the name of the Father,
the Son, and the Holy Ghost; namely, that I worship Thee, O God
our Father, and Thy Son with Thee, and that the Holy Spirit,
that proceeds from Thee, may be awakened."</p>

<p>Again Vicecomes (lib. 2, cap. 27.) quotes from Hilarius, on
the 15th chapter of Matt: the following, "They that come to
baptism confess first, that they believe in the Son of God, and
in His suffering and resurrection; and this confession is made
or pronounced at the sacrament of baptism, "</p>

<p>Again, Hilarius writes (vol. 2, de Trinitate), "The Lord has
commanded -to baptize in the name of the Father, and of the
Son, and of the Holy Ghost; that is, upon the confession of the
Author (that is, Him who in the beginning created all things),
and the First-born, and the Free Gift (that is, the Son
and--the Holy Ghost)." Jac. Ylehrn. Bapt., Histor., 2d part,
pages 371, 372.</p>

<h2>HILARIUS ON BAPTISM AND SEVERAL OTHER ARTICLES OF
HIS FAITH, ACCORDING TO THE ACCOUNT OF P. J. TWISCK</h2> 

<p>Hilarius, originally a heathen, who subsequently became a
Christian, and was baptized at Rome, A. D. 350, was a very
learned and eloquent man. He writes (lib. 2), "The Lord has
commanded 'to baptize on, or in, the name of the Father, of the
Son, and of the Holy Ghost, that is," etc.</p>

<p>He also defended the truth against the Arians, on account of
which he was exiled: and he likewise vigorously opposed the
arrogance of the see of Rome, and its dominion over other
churches, and said that antichrist would devastate the earth
through wars and murder.</p>

<p>To those who concerned themselves more in wondering at the
building of the temple, than in the' consideration of the
doctrine he says, "You are indeed, unwise, to look with wonder
upon these things; for, you must know that antichrist shall
once, .set, his throne there., "The nature of the name antichrist is opposition to Christ,
which he effects under a specious semblance of the Gospel. He
transforms himself into an angel of light, that he may alienate
the Christian mind. He has already, to some extent, commenced
his progress, pretending to be Christ, though he is departed
very far from Christ., "They (that is, the Antichristians) ambitiously desire the
aid of the secular power, which they draw,to themselves in
order to advance their name and honor, and to protect their
church; thus working with a worldly ambition, notwithstanding
it is folly to employ secular power in defense of the Christian
church.</p>

<p>'.'Let me ask you, ye bishops, what aid did the apostles
employ in proclaiming the Gospel? by the assistance of what
magistracy did they preach Christ, and convert the heathen from
idolatry to God?, "Now the church counts the favor of the world, and boasts
that the world loves her, who could at no time have been the
church of Christ, without being hated by the world."</p>

<p>Again, on the 68th Psalm, he says, "God is now preached,
honored, and worshiped in stone, wood, and metal, and the
Master-builder of the world, the Father of us all, is fashioned
in perishable matter, to which they have been brought by the,
enticing words of philosophy. With these and like words he
greatly censures the abuse practiced by the church of Rome." P.
J. <i>Tzvisck, Chron., 4th book, page 104, col. 1, 2, from
Socrat., lib. 3. Casp. Swine, epist. 1, fol. 877. Seb.
Fr.</i></p>

<p>Since the above passages from Hilarius are not only
excellent, but also plain, so that they require</p>

</div><div id="159"> 

<p>no explanation, we leave them and proceed to others who
confessed the same faith.</p>

<p>NOTE.-At this time, Hilarius taught that all human
traditions, on account of which God's commandments are
transgressed, must be rooted out. On Matt. 15, Canon 14. Sam.
heltius, <i>Geslnchtregister, page</i> 122. He also writes, "The
Father revealed to Peter, who said: 'Thou art the Son of God,'
that the church should be built upon this rock of
confession.""This faith," he says,"is the foundation of the
church; this faith has the keys of heaven." In the same place,
as well as in the 6th book of the Trinity.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 350.-In the meantime we find that the parents
of Augustine's mother, though they were Christians, did not
have their daughter Monica baptized in her infancy; inasmuch as
she was not baptized until she had reached the years of
understanding, and this at the time when the followers of
Cyprian practiced infant baptism to a very great extent. With
regard to this, I find the following account, "Moreover, even in
Africa, where Cyprian had held the aforesaid council-to
determine on the precise time for baptizing infants-and
resolved that baptism should be administered to infants as soon
as they were born, it was, about the year 350, not observed by
all Christian believers. Of this, we have an example in Monica,
Augustine's mother, a very pious woman, born of Christian
parents, who also was baptized when she had reached the years
of understanding, as Augustine himself testifies." <i>H.
Montan. Nietigh., page 71,</i> from <i>Augustine, lib. 2.
Confess., cap.</i> 3, <i>and lib. 9, cap. 8 and</i> 13.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 351.-It is recorded that the Christians at
Neocesarea declared themselves openly against infant baptism,
in a convention or assembly of the ministers, called the
council of Neocesarea; so that infant baptism, which then began
to prevail in different places, could gain no support there, as
appears from the various rules adopted by this body.</p>

<p>In Canon 5, we read, "If a catechumen who is not yet
baptized, and has his place among the catechumens in the
church, has been seen in a sin, he shall hear the preaching on
his bended knees; that he may refrain from the sin he
committed; but if he persists in it, he shall be expelled."</p>

<p>In Canon 6, we read, "Pregnant women may be baptized,
whenever they desire it; for in this sacrament there is no
communication between the mother and the child which is born of
her; but everyone must in this confession himself declare his
free will and good intention."</p>

<p>Canon 11, after some other words declares, "The Lord was not
baptized until He was thirty years old, and thereupon He
preached." <i>Jacob Mehrn., Bapt. Hist.,</i> 2d <i>part,
pages</i> 351, 352.</p>

<p>First, when in Canon 5, mention is made of the catechumens,
it certainly indicates that it was customary to instruct the
young before baptism, in the articles of the faith, upon which
followed the con fession of the same, and baptism. This cannot
be contradicted.</p>

<p>Secondly, when in Canon 6 it is established that pregnant
women may be baptized whenever they desire it, because there is
no communication between the mother and the child which is born
of her, it clearly confirms that infant baptism had no place
whatsoever among them, but, that they were indeed inimical to
it. It appears that a difficulty was raised at that time, as to
whether pregnant women might be baptized or not; for it was
thought or feared that the fruit had such communion with the
mother, that the child, too, would become a partaker of the
baptism received by the mother; which would have been contrary
to the views held by the church, that no one should be baptized
except upon his own confession of faith, and consequently, no
infants, much less unborn children. But this apprehension or
difficulty was removed, when it was declared that in the
reception of baptism there is no communication between the
mother and the child, and that for this reason the child does
not participate in the baptism received by the mother. This is
too clear to be refuted.</p>

<p>Thirdly, when in Canon 11, mention is made of Christ being
baptized when He was thirty years old, notwithstanding that
preaching is here spoken of, and that the same ought .not to be
undertaken by one before he is thirty years old, the baptism
which is administered upon faith or in adult years, is
nevertheless also recommended and deemed necessary. For, as
Christ was baptized in adult years, and forthwith began to
preach, so that the time of His baptism was also the time of
His preaching; even so (the Canon apparently means to say),
baptizing, like preaching, may only take place in adult years;
for as the one requires understanding, so does the other,
according to the example of Christ.</p>

<p>A. D. 360.-P. J. Twisck writes, "Notwithstanding that at this
time, much bloody cruelty was practiced against the bishop who
sided with Arius, so that this party was almost wholly crushed,
still, according to history, there remained sects like the
Anabaptists, etc. If their books were extant, we might give an
account of what they taught concerning all these matters; but
as it is, we let it suffice with what others have written." P.
J. Twisch, <i>Chron., 4th book, page</i> 106, col. 2, from Jac.
P. <i>perm. Onsch., lib. 4,</i> fol. 131.</p>

<p>It is exceedingly to be regretted that so few of the
writings of the Anabaptists who lived at that time, are extant;
for thereby we are compelled to receive information concerning
them from the mouths of their enemies; which information, as we
may readily judge, was not dictated by love, but by animosity.
However, we owe thanks to God, that even this much has come
down to us respecting their history; since Satan, through the
instrumentality of his adherents, has always aimed to
exterminate, not only their books, but also their lives, yea,
their bodies and souls, if possible.</p>

</div><div id="160"> 

<p><i>A. D.</i> 362.-Saint Martin, born of heathen parents,
when he was ten years old, went, contrary to the will of his
parents, to the meetings of the Christians, embraced
Christianity and was baptized when he was eighteen years old.
Being now a Christian, he desired to be discharged from the
military profession into which he had been brought by his
parents; hence he said to the apostate Emperor, Julian, that it
was not lawful for him to fight, because he was a
Christian.</p>

<p>But as the Minorite, <i>Thomas van. Heerentaals,</i> in his
<i>Mirror of the Ten Commandments and Seven Sacraments,</i>
gives a somewhat fuller account concerning St. Martin, and
especially of baptism as practiced at that time, we shall make
a short extract from it. He says, "In former times it was
customary to administer holy baptism but twice a year, namely,
on Easter eve and on Pentecost eve; except in cases of
necessity, which was fourfold: 1. In a siege. 2. In danger of
martyrdom. 3. In peril at sea. 4. In dangerous sickness. In
such cases they baptized all, and at all times, that no one
might die without baptism. But when these four reasons did not
exist, baptism was administered only on the two above-mentioned
days, and that with great solemnity and dignity, and all who
were admitted to baptism, had attained the years of
understanding; even St. Martin, that holy man, was a catechumen
for six years-from the time he was twelve, until he was
eighteen years old-before he received baptism." P. <i>J.
Twisek, Chron., 4th book, page</i> 110, col. 4, 2.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 363 <i>and</i> 364.-In the time of Julian the
apostates there lived and shone as bright lights; various
excellent men, whose learning and piety it is not necessary to
extol, since it is sufficiently known. They gave expression to
their orthodox convictions by word and by deed, especially with
regard to the matter of baptism, that it ought to be
administered after previous instruction, upon faith and
repentance.</p>

<p>At the same time, A. D. 363, there lived Ambrose, who is
stated to have been born of Christian parents. His father's
name was also Ambrose, while that of his mother was Marcellina.
He, too, was not baptized until the day on which he was chosen
bishop of Milan, after having been instructed in the catechism,
that is, in the doctrines of the faith.* See concerning this,
<i>Tract van den loop der wereld, by F. H. H., printed 1611,
page 47,</i> 48, from <i>Paul. de vita Ambrosii. Naucler.
Chron. Generat.</i> 13.</p>

<p>Such a procedure, namely, thus precipitately to elect any
one bishop or teacher, as is stated here concerning Ambrose, we
do not commend; but we notice here, that Christians at that
time had not</p>

<br /><cite>* Bullinger says that before the days of Ambrose
(A.D. 363), Aurentius rejected infant baptism. See, P. J.
Twisck, Chron., page 114, col. 2, in the annotation.</cite> 

<p>D. Vicecomes (lib. 2, cap. 6) records, from Nolanus,
concerning Ambrose that in his time, Frigitil, Queen of the
Marcomans, having heard from a Christian man, what good things
were said of Ambrose, believed in Christ, and recognized him
(Ambrose) as his minister. To her, Ambrose wrote an excellent
epistle. See, ' Bapt. Hist.," page 462. generally adopted
infant baptism; nay, that some, notwithstanding the papal
power, purposely did not have their children baptized; causing
them, when they had reached maturer years, to be instructed
first, and then baptized, upon their own confession.</p>

<p>Ambrose <i>(Sean.</i> 61) makes the statement, "It was
customary for all people to be baptized at Easter." In <i>Lib.
de Jejunio, cap. 10,</i> he says, "Now comes the day of the
resurrection; now the elect are baptized." Yet on I Tim.
<i>4,</i> he says that the sick were baptized on any day.
<i>Jac. 117ehrn., Bapt. Hist.,</i> 2d part, <i>page</i>
334.</p>

<p>These words of Ambrose confirm our preceding assertion; for
when he says that at Easter it was customary to baptize all
people, he sufficiently declares that at that time infant
baptism was not a custom. For not only at Easter, but
throughout the whole year, children are born, the baptism of
which, because of the danger that they might die, could never
have been postponed until Easter, had infant baptism been
deemed necessary for salvation. But Ambrose removes all doubt
when he says what persons were baptized then, namely, <i>all
people;</i> for by the word <i>people</i> there are generally
understood adult or rational persons, and not infants in the
cradle.</p>

<p>Moreover; when he writes that the sick were baptized on any
day, he proves thereby, that infant baptism was not practiced
in the church of which he speaks. For, if it had been customary
there, to baptize infants, it would not have been necessary to
baptize the sick on any day, since they would have been
baptized already in their infancy; or our opponents must show
that the sick, who were baptized any day, were also baptized in
their infancy; which they dare not maintain, seeing these
churches would then have to be regarded anabaptists.
Nevertheless, one of two things must follow. Either that the
sick who were baptized in their infancy were rebaptized, or
that the adults baptized had not been baptized in their
infancy. If the former is true, then the Anabaptists, as they
are called, flourished already in those early times. But if the
latter is true, then there were at that time whole churches who
rejected infant baptism, or, at least, suffered their children
to remain unbaptized. This is so clear that it cannot -be
refuted.</p>

<h2>OF SEVERAL OTHER ARTICLES OF FAITH TAUGHT BY AMBROSE, ACCORDING TO THE ACCOUNT OF P. J. TWISCK</h2> 
<p>"Ambrose (on Rom. 1) ridicules those who say: 'We cannot
come before God except through the mediation of the saints,
just as we come before a king through the mediation of counts.'
'Well then,' says he, 'is not he guilty of contempt of majesty,
who ascribes to counts the honor due to the king? Certainly.
Why then, will not they consider themselves sinners, who give
God's name and honor to creatures, and, setting aside the Lord,
worship His servants? Because kings are not acquainted with</p>

</div><div id="161"> 

<p>the individual wants of every one, interpreters and
advocates appear before them; but God, to whom nothing is hid,
needs no advocates or informants, but simply an humble
heart.', "Again: 'They now bestow such names and honor upon the
images,-as they would never have dared to give to the living
person, namely, divine honor; and this, when they are dead.'
Thus Ambrose reproves the image worship of the Roman church,
and (on Col. 1) positively asserts that 'neither elements, nor
saints, nor angels should be honored or worshiped, but Christ
alone.', " 'It seems,' says he, 'that Ambrose, too, would seek
antichrist at Rome;' for he says that 'antichrist shall restore
to the Romans their freedom, under his name,' and calls the
city of antichrist 'the city of the devil.' He says further,
that 'antichrist shall be revealed after the downfall of the
Roman Empire, or when the Emperors shall have lost their
power;' and history shows that the decline of the Roman
Emperors was the augmentation of the power and dominion of the
Popes or antichrists., "Ambrose says , further: 'The violence of worldly opponents
must not be overcome with worldly, but with spiritual weapons;
and heretics must be punished only by exclusion from the
church, for the champions of Christ seek neither weapons nor
iron balls:, "Again, in regard to marriage he says: 'Purity of the body
is something to be desired by us, and I commend it by way of
advice, but do not enjoin it as a command; for the virgin state
may be advised, but not commanded.' <i>Hist. Tripart., lib.</i>
7, <i>cap. 8. Adolphus Tectander Apol., fol. 163. Casp. Swinch,
Epist. 1, fol.</i> 877. <i>Hier. Zanc., fol.</i> 65. <i>D.
Anth. 1., fol. 116.</i>, "Again: The words of Ambrose clearly indicate that he means
that the sacrament (the Lord's Supper), should be received
under both forms, that is, with bread and wine. <i>Lib. 9,
cap.</i> 30. <i>Seb. Fr., fol.</i> 50., "Again: 'The body of Christ is not material or earthly food,
or bread, but a spiritual, eternal bread, which feeds believing
souls. Regenerated men belong to this table, of which the
ungodly cannot partake.' <i>Chron. Seb. Fr. on Ambrose.</i>, "Again: Ambrose says also: ' We are in duty bound to examine
the churches, and if there is one which,rejects the faith, and
does not hold to the foundation of the apostolical doctrine, we
must leave it."' In <i>Lucam, lib.</i> 6, cap. <i>9. P. J.
Twisck, Chron., 4th book, page 114, col. 2 and</i> 115, col.
<i>1, 2.</i></p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 364.-It is recorded that in or about the second
year of Julian, the Apostate, there lived and wrote the very
learned, yet humble, Ephrem, surnamed Syrus, who, in writing of
baptism, relates that in his time it was customary for people,
when they were baptized, to renounce with express words the
devil and all his works. <i>Jac. Mehrn. in Bacent;t.
Hist.,</i> 2d <i>part, page</i> 328. Ephrem <i>(Lib. de
Poenit., cap. 5)</i> also enumerates the works of Satan which
we renounce in baptism, as fornication, adultery, uncleanness,
lying, stealing, envy, etc.</p>

<p>Page 336. He also states <i>(Orat.</i> 3, <i>de S</i>.
<i>Lavacro)</i> that it is customary for the candidates for
baptism to confess their sins. And from his book on
<i>Repentance, chap.</i> 5, it appears that those who were thus
baptized confessed their faith before many witnesses, and
said, "I renounce thee, O Satan, and all thy works."</p>

<p><i>Page</i> 324. <i>hicecome (Lib. 1, cap.</i> 20) quotes
the following from Ephrem Syrus, "This declaration of
renunciation, as it is called, which we make in baptism, seems
to be a small matter, but it has a deeper meaning, and he that
observes it rightly is truly blessed; for with these few words,
namely those spoken in baptism, we let go all that is called
evil, and is hated of God, and renounce the same; and these
things are not one, two, or ten, but everything that can be
called evil, for you say: 'I renounce Satan and all his
works."'"This," writes Jac. Mehrn.,"is certainly not a
meaningless or frivolous performance that can be imposed on
infants."</p>

<p>A. D. 365,-About the beginning of this year, Gregory of
Nyssa is mentioned, who, observing, it seems, how some came to
baptism, unprepared and with an ungodly mind, wrote the
following for their instruction, "When we pass through the
sacramental water of baptism, we must mortify in the water all
that is evil and vicious, such as unchastity, rapacity, luxury,
frivolity, pride, vanity of the mind, envy, and the like. We
must also drown and forsake in the water, as much as is
possible, not only the gross vices, with their operations, but
also the emotions and pollutions of the mind which, in some
measure, cleave to human nature." <i>Grey. Nyss., lib. de vita
Mosis.</i> Also, <i>Jac. Mehrn., Bapt. Hist., page</i> 328.</p>

<p>When at this time some thought it was needful to be baptized
in consecrated water, he declared in a certain sermon, that
this was not necessary, but that faith and the blessing of the
minister were all that a person needed for baptism; for every
place is the Lord's, and all kinds of water may be used for
baptism, if God only finds faith, for this He accepts, and the
blessing of the minister, which sanctifies. <i>Bapt. Hist., 2d
part, page 376,</i> from <i>hicecom., lib. 1, cap. 14, from
Greg. Nyss.</i></p>

<p>In another place he very earnestly admonishes some persons
who deferred their baptism, that they should have their names
registered among the catechumens, in order that, having been
truly examined and instructed in the faith, they might receive
baptism. Concerning this, I find the following annotation
<i>(Bapt. Hist., page 476,</i> from <i>hicecom., lib. 2, cap.
12), "Gregory</i> of Nyssa says in a sermon, to those who had
long deferred their baptism: 'Come, ye who are burdened to your
sanctification; give me your names, that I may write them with
ink in</p>

</div><div id="162"> 

<p>earthly books; but may God record them on tablets that never
perish.'"</p>

<p>Thus, also Gregory of Nyssa, as has been shown, wrote sound
and correct doctrine respecting baptism. Besides this we have
not been able to find any other testimony from him relative to
this subject.</p>

<p>A. D. 366.-Infant baptism, as it appears, beginning to gain
a foothold in some places, the teachers at Laodicea, in Phrygia
Pacatiana, declared themselves decidedly against it, in a
public convention or assembly, in which, among other things, it
was resolved, "That those whom it was the intention to baptize,
should previously be instructed in the faith, and be examined
concerning it, on Thursday of the last week of Lent." Compare
<i>Seb. Franck, Cons. Laod.,</i> with P. 1. Twisck,
<i>Chron.,</i> p. 112, col. 1, 2.*</p>

<p>It is recorded that about this time, in another convention
of ministers, called the Elibertine Council, it was resolved
among other things, "That persons who embrace the Christian faith shall, if they
lead a pious life, be admitted to baptism, in eighteen months
or two years." <i>hicecont., lib.</i> 2, coup. 8, from the 42d
Canon of the Elibertine Council, as noted by Jac. <i>Mehrn.,
Bapt. Hist., pace</i> 372.</p>

<p>Here we cannot but see the uprightness and carefulness of
the afore-mentioned ministers, who, so as not to act contrary
to the command of Christ, and baptize .any without true faith
and repentance, deemed it preferable to defer for eighteen
months or two years, the baptism of even those catechumens,
whose life was well spoken of; in order that, having in the
meantime well counted the cost, they might erect a good
building, and be built up by baptism as living stones in the
Christian temple of the church.</p>

<p>In the meantime, it appears that an abuse obtained in the
administration of baptism, namely, that a plate was presented
to the candidates, that they might put some money on, it
(either for the minister, or for the poor). But this was also
abolished at that time, with these words, "It has also seemed
proper to us, to ordain that hereafter the candidates for
baptism shall not put any money on the plate, as has been the
custom." <i>Bapt. Hist.,</i> page 372, <i>ex Concilio
Elibertino hicecom., lib. 4,</i> cap. 2.</p>

<p>From this custom of presenting a plate to the candidates,
that they might put money on it, and from its abolishment, the
plain inference is, that the candidates were not little
children, and that the decree enacted concerning them, did not
concern little children, for these have neither the knowledge
nor the ability to do it, or voluntarily to omit it.</p>

<p><i>About A.</i> D. 370.-We are informed that about this time
there taught and wrote Opatatus Milevitanus, a. catechist, who,
it is stated, by virtue of</p>

<br /><cite>* P. J. Twisck fixes this council of 1.aodicea
in the year 364, while Seb. Franck states that it occurred in
the year 368, but we follow a middle course, and assign the
year 366 as its date. his office instructed the young in the
articles of the faith, in order that after previous
instruction, they might be baptized upon their own confession.
Speaking of the things that are to be observed in and about
baptism, he says, "We know that in the observance of holy
baptism there are three essentials. The first relates to the
Holy Trinity, the second to the believer, and the third to the
baptizer; but they must not all be weighed in the same
balance." <i>Bapt. Hist., page</i> 327, <i>from Opt. Mil.,
lib.</i> 3.</cite> 

<p>Although these words seem somewhat obscure, they
nevertheless contain enough light for us to perceive clearly,
of what baptism, and of what matter he speaks. As regards the
matter of which he here treats, it apparently is the dignity of
baptism, in order to prove which, he alleges that in baptism
there are three very worthy things. Mentioning the most worthy
first, he says that it is God or the Holy Trinity. As the
second, he mentions the believer, namely, him who stands ready
to be baptized; for he is very worthy in the sight of God,
since Christ says, "He that believeth and is baptized shall be
saved" (Mark 16:16). As the third, he mentions the baptizer,
namely, him who has received so worthy an office from God. From
these three worthy circumstances he justly concludes the
dignity of baptism.</p>

<p>From this it is clear as sunlight, of what baptism he
speaks, for in mentioning the believer, in connection with
baptism, and speaking of him as the one to be baptized, he
certainly indicates that he does not speak of children, or of
infant baptism, but of the baptism bf believers. Moreover, a
little after the preceding words, he says concerning the
candidate for baptism, of whom he speaks, "He follows the faith
of the believers."</p>

<p>Vicecomes <i>(lib.</i> 2, <i>cap.</i> 4), cites Optatus
Milevitanus, and says that in the 5th book against Parmes he
expounds the words of St. Paul, I Cor. 3:6, on this wise, " 'I
have planted, Apollos watered,' that is: O ye heathen, I have
made you disciples of Christ; Apollos has baptized these
disciples."</p>

<p>Likewise in the 2nd book, 7th chapter, Vicecomes
writes, "Optatus was a catechist at Carthage." Also, <i>Bapt.
Hist., page</i> 375.</p>

<p>These things confirm our. previous declaration; for, when he
calls unbelieving and unbaptized persons heathen, and, on the
other hand, pronounces those who had been instructed in the
faith, and baptized upon it, disciples of Christ, without
remarking whether they were born of Christian, or of heathen
parents, he declares thereby, that it is not birth, but
unbelief and absence of baptism, which constitutes one a
heathen, and that not Christian parentage, but faith and
baptism, make one a Christian; which well accords with the
words of Paul, Gal. 3:26-28, "For ye are all the children of God
by faith in Christ Jesus. For as many as have been baptized
into Christ have put on Christ. There is neither Jew nor Greek,
there is</p>

</div><div id="163"> 

<p>neither bond nor free, there is 'neither male nor female:
for ye are all one in Christ Jesus."</p>

<p>Again, the fact that Opa.tatus, as Vicecomes writes, was a
catechist, indicates that at the place where he was teacher it
was the custom, to teach the candidates for baptism the
catechism, that is, to instruct them in the faith, before they
were baptized; hence these candidates were called
catechumens.</p>

<p>NOTE.-Damascenus writes that"at this time, A. D. 370, the
Gospel was preached in all the world, not by the force of arms,
nor by subjugating its adversaries through war, but by a
handful of poor, naked, and martyred people, that is, by
patience and faith. For, how could the church have martyrs, if
she made martyrs?" <i>Damusc.,</i> 3 <i>Cent., cap.</i> 33. P.
J. <i>Twisck, Chron., 4th book, Page</i> 116, <i>cal.
2.</i></p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 380.-Gregory of Nazianzus, in Cappadocia, born
of Christian parents, was not baptized until he was in his
twentieth year; concerning which, Jacob Mehrning gives the
following account, "His father, Bishop at Nazianzus, and also
called Gregory, and his mother Nonna, a pious woman of
Christian parentage, knew nothing of infant baptism, for they
did not have their son (Gregory) baptized in his infancy. His
baptism, according to history, did not take place until he was
in his twentieth year. <i>Bapt. Hist., Page</i> 354. Also,
<i>H. Mont. Nietigh., page 62.</i></p>

<p>In order to show still further, how vain and useless infant
baptism was deemed at that time, by various pious and learned
men, and how baptism was even deferred till late in life, we
will adduce one or two brief examples.*</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 381.-It is stated that in this year there was
baptized at. Constantinople, Nectarius, after he had attained
his full understanding, yea, such an advanced age and
penetrating knowledge, that he was at the same time elected
bishop or teacher of that place, the like of which occurred
previously, as stated concerning Ambrose, in the year 363. See
P. J. <i>Twisck,:Chron. 4th book, page 122, from Histor.
Tripart., lib. 9, cap.</i> 13. <i>Adolph. Apol.,</i> fol. 163.
<i>Leonh., lib.</i> 2. <i>Merula, fol.</i> 312.</p>

<p>As regards the statement how precipitately and unexpectedly
Nectarius was elected bishop or teacher of that place, even as
was related of Ambrose, it is not our purpose to defend or
advocate it; but simply to show that he deferred baptism in his
youth, and was not baptized until he had attained to quite an
advanced age.</p>

<p>NOTE.-In A. D. 382, Theodosius, born and bred by Christian
parents, was baptized at Thessalonica, by Bishop Ascholius.
<i>Hist. Eccl., lib.</i> 5, <i>cap. 6, Socrates.</i> Also,
<i>H. Montan., page</i> 70.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 383.-Basilius* and Eubulus, said to each</p>

<br /><cite>* About this time (A.D. 380), Ambrose taught
that the heathen worshiped wood, because they judged it to be
the image of God; but, says he, 'God's image is
invisible."-Tom. 4 in Psal. 118, Sex. 10. Stamuel Veltius, in
Geslacht-register, page 119. other, "Let us sell all our goods,
and distribute to the poor, and then journey to the holy city,
that we may behold for ourselves the wonderful works of God,
and thereby awaken within us a confidence towards God." Having
done this, and taken with them the clothes necessary for
baptism, they journeyed to Jerusalem. <i>Vicecom., lib.</i> 3,
<i>cap. 4, from Amphilochius.</i> Jac. <i>Mehrn., Bapt. Hist.,
2d part, page</i> 389.</cite> 

<p>Amphilochius writes of a baptized Jewish physician, who
distributed the money he had gained by his profession, among
the hospitals, and gave the rest to other poor people.
<i>Vicecom., lib.</i> 5, <i>cap. 46. Bapt. Hist.,</i> see
above.</p>

<p>We mentioned Basilius and Eubulus, who journeyed to
Jerusalem, taking with them the clothes necessary for baptism,
in order to be baptized. From this it appears that it was the
custom at that time in Jerusalem and one that remained in use
long afterwards in many warm countries-to baptize the
candidates in or at rivers, and that they went partly or with
the whole body down into the water, and then came up again; to
which end they divested themselves of their own clothes,
usually had on a white or linen garment. This is the kind of
clothes that Basilius and Eubulus appear to have taken with
them, in order to be baptized therein.</p>

<p>Now, compare this with the baptism of infants in the cradle,
and you will at once see that this mode of baptism cannot take
place with infants, since they have neither the ability nor the
understanding necessary for the observance of such a mode of
baptism.</p>

<p>We will now proceed to .the views of Basilius with regard to
baptism, and what he, according to the testimony of ancient
writiers, has taught and written concerning it. First, it is
stated of him, that in writing of baptism, he in no wise
mentions infant baptism but, on the other hand, the baptism of
catechumens, ,that is, persons receiving instruction in the
faith.</p>

<p>Concerning this, H. Montanus and Jacob Mehrning unanimously
give the following testimony, "The afore-mentioned Basilius who
was bishop of Caesarea, in Cappadocia, A. D. 386, exhorts only
the catechumens to baptism, without once mentioning infants,
yea, he sufficiently indicates that infant baptism was not the
custom there at his time, saying: 'Ye who haye been evangelized
by the apostles, repent, and be baptized every one of you in
the name of our Lord Jesus Christ."'</p>

<p>True, he exhorts also the young to baptism, yet not such as
are altogether destitute of understanding, but those who can
hear the words by which he admonishes them to baptism, that is,
adults, and not infants. He uses such expressions throughout
this entire exhortation, and also in</p>

<p>' That this Basilius was the son of Christian parents,
appears from"Bapt. Hist." page 365. Instances of this kind, it
is stated there, occurred at that time also in other places; we
mention Basilius, Jerome, Ambrose, etc., all of whom were born
of Christian parents, and baptized upon confession of their
faith.</p>

</div><div id="164"> 

<p>some of his other writings, as in the book of the"Holy
Spirit," chap. 12, 14, and 27; but nowhere does he mention
infant baptism. H. <i>Montan. Nietigh, page</i> 73. Jac.
<i>Mehrn., Bapt. Hist., .page 365.</i></p>

<p>Moreover, the words of Basilius, whenever he treats of
baptism, clearly express that they cannot be applied to
infants. For, showing the nature of baptism, and what it is, he
says <i>(Lib.</i> 3, <i>Contra Eunom.), "Baptism</i> is a seal
of faith." Again <i>(Exhort. ad Baapt.), "Baptism</i> is the
mark of the Christian champion." Again <i>(de Instr. ad Bapt.
hen.), "Baptism</i> is a likeness of death, burial, and the
resurrection of the dead." <i>Bapt. Hist., p.</i> 322.</p>

<p>These things are so clear that they require no explanation,
and we shall therefore proceed to what he says further. As
regards the form of baptism, according to the institution of
Christ, he writes <i>(Lib.</i> 3, <i>Contra Eunom.), "Our</i>
baptism is administered according to the institution of the
Lord, in the name of the Father, the Son, and the Holy
Ghost."</p>

<p>Again, concerning the faith which must accompany such
baptism, he says <i>(Lib. de Sp. S.,</i> cap. 12), "When we
believe on the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost, we are also
baptized in the name of the Father, the Son, and the Holy
Ghost." <i>Bapt. Hist., page</i> 323.</p>

<p>Respecting the words of the candidates, and what manner of
conduct they observed at baptism, he says, in the last named
book, that the candidates for baptism renounced Satan and all
his angels. Again <i>(Exhort. ad Bapt.)</i> he states that they
lifted up their hands towards heaven; that they kneeled down in
prayer. <i>Bapt. Hist., page</i> 336.</p>

<p>He makes mention, moreover, in many places, of various other
circumstances and matters pertaining to baptism; of which we
will present the following to the reader.</p>

<p>Basilius the Great writes <i>(Contra Eunom., lib.</i>
3), "Faith must precede, if the believer is to be sealed by
baptism."</p>

<p>D. Vicecomes adduces from Basilius, <i>book 1, chap.</i> 23,
of his <i>Exhortation to Baptism</i> the following, "When wilt
thou become a Christian? When shall we recognize thee as one of
our number? Last year thou deferredst it till the present
Easter; and now thou wilt wait till the next. Take heed, lest
thou be deceived in thy expectation of a long life."</p>

<p>Again, chap. <i>31,</i> Basilius, in the 128th epistle,
commends C. Posthumanius, and wishes that he had been his
godfather, since the same had made such a glorious confession
at his baptism; and this with great contrition, pain, and
anguish of spirit; and had evinced in his life and conversation
the moderation which the confession of the Christian name
demands.</p>

<p>Again, chap. <i>33,</i> Vicecomes writes, "Basilius is
greatly astonished (in the 23d epistle to Boniface), at infant
baptism and godfathership, saying 'Since you cannot promise
anything certain, either with regard to the child's future
faith, or its present thoughts, I pray thee, beloved, what then
does it signify that, when the children are brought to</p>

<p>baptism, the parents, as sureties, answer in their stead,
and say that the children do that which at that age they cannot
even think, or, which if they can, is hid from us? But those
who bring the child are asked: Does it believe in God? and, for
this age, which knows not whether there is a God, the parents
answer: It believes. Thus also the other questions are
responded to. I am astonished that in such matters the parents
answer so presumptuously for the child: <i>" Bapt. Hist.,
pages</i> 390, 391.</p>

<p>This can certainly be called a candid rejection of infant
baptism, and not only of infant baptism, but of all the absurd
questions and answers which</p>

<p>customarily occurred at the baptism of children, and upon
which infant baptism was founded. He accuses the children of
ignorance, saying that they do not know whether there is a God;
the parents he accuses of presumption because they thus boldly
dare answer in their stead, and say, "The child believes." The
priests who baptize such children, he accuses of folly, because
they presented such improper and unfounded questions respecting
the ignorant infants, and demanded that they should be answered
in the child's name. Infant baptism itself he charges with
worthlessness and falsity, seeing, as Vicecomes says, he, in
his 23d epistle to Boniface, is greatly astonished at infant
baptism.</p>

<p>Basilius, in order to still more fully state his views
concerning this matter, adduces various passages, which
effectually overthrow infant baptism, and establish baptism
upon faith.</p>

<p>D. Vicecomes <i>(Lib.</i> 2, <i>cap.</i> 3) writes
thus, "Basilius calls the catechumens <i>nurtured ones,</i>
since they were fed and nurtured with instruction in the
Christian faith."</p>

<p>Again <i>(cap.</i> 4, <i>Basilius Serm. 1, de Bapt.)</i> he
says, "We must know that we must first teach and instruct, and
ultimately administer holy baptism to those thus rightly
instructed." And, a little after this, "Instruction must precede
baptism, and first of all everything which stands in the way of
teaching and instruction, must be removed."</p>

<p>Again, in <i>book 3, chapter 4,</i> of the <i>Exhortation to
Baptism,</i> he writes, "Examine thy conscience; go into the
secret chamber of thy heart; awaken within thee for a time the
remembrance of former things."</p>

<p>Again, chapter 5, "As soon as any one came to John, and
confessed his sins, however great and heinous they were, he was
baptized in Jordan's floods, and immediately received remission
of sins." <i>Bapt. Hist., page 392.</i></p>

<p>All these passages of Basilius as cited by D. Vicecomes,
himself a pedobaptist, and noted by J. M. <i>in Bapt.
Hist.,</i> are so clearly opposed to infant baptism, that
further comment is unnecessary. We will therefore let this
suffice, and proceed to the</p>

</div><div id="165"> 

<p>testimony of several other persons in the fourth
century.</p>

<p>A. D. 390.-John Chrysostom, born of Christian parents, was
at this time baptized upon his faith by Bishop Melitius being
twenty-one years old. <i>Episcopii. Antew. op de proeve des
Remonstr. Catechism., page 359.</i></p>

<h2>CHRYSOSTOM'S VIEWS RESPECTING BAPTISM</h2> 

<p>Chrysostom, though he lived in and under the Roman church,
and was not fully enlightened in all respects, nevertheless
wrote soundly and correctly on the subject of baptism, as is
shown by the following extracts from his writings.</p>

<p>Jacob Mehrning, in <i>Bapt. Hist.,</i> following the
<i>Centurice Magdeburgenses,</i> says, <i>page 403:</i> "How
baptism must be received, St. Chrysostom reminds <i>us (Hom.
14, in Marc.):</i> 'Thus ye who desire to receive baptism,
since we are all under the dominion of sin, lay hold first of
the feet of your Saviour; wash them with your tears; dry them
with your hair; and, this done, you may approach His head. When
you then descend with your Saviour into the fountain of life,
that is, the water of baptism, you may learn how the head of
your Redeemer was anointed.'"</p>

<p>Moreover, he explains still further; how one must prepare
himself for baptism, and this with such affectionate words as
should move every soul.</p>

<p>In <i>Bapt. Hist., page 445, Homil. 13, Mare.,</i>
Chrysostom says, "Will you come to baptism? Oh how happy are you
when you shall be regenerated in Christ! when you shall put on
Christ; when you are buried with Christ, that you may also rise
with Him. At another day you shall be made acquainted in proper
order with the things that are expedient for this mystery. In
the meantime I tell you this, that you may know it, and may
prepare yourselves for the coming day (namely, for baptism).
But may the Almighty God strengthen your hearts, and make you
worthy of His baptism. May He Himself come into you, at
baptism. May He Himself hallow the water wherewith you are
sanctified. Let no one go there with a doubting heart. Let no
one say: Do you indeed think that my sins will be forgiven? He
that goeth there thus, his sins shall not be forgiven. It is
better, not to go there at all, than in this manner. Remember
this, especially you who thus receive baptism, that you may
serve God."</p>

<p>I beg you, dear reader, to observe attentively these words
of Chrysostom. Does he say anything at all different from what
the Anabaptist teachers of the present day say? O no! he
follows the same course. For, first he says, "Will you come to
baptism?" He does not say: Will you carry your infants to
baptism? How could he speak more plainly? For, to come oneself,
and to desire to come, is certainly no child's work.</p>

<p>Then he says, "Oh, how happy are you, when you shall be
regenerated in Christ? when you shall put on Christ?" (namely,
in or through baptism). But what else is there said by this,
than what the apostle Paul declares of believers, namely, that
they are saved. by the washing of regeneration, that is,
baptism, Tit. <i>3:3; and</i> that they put on Christ by
baptism, Gal. <i>3:27.</i></p>

<p>Then he says, "At ,another day you shall be made acquainted
in proper order with the things that are expedient for this
mystery" (that is, baptism). In like manner, Christ teaches to
instruct the candidates for baptism before they axe baptized.
Matt. 28.:19; Mark <i>16:15, 16.</i> John likewise first
instructed those whom he baptized. Matt. <i>3:7, 8.</i> Peter
first instructed the Jews. Acts 2:<i>38.</i> Philip first
instructed the Ethiopian. Acts <i>8:34, 35.</i> Ananias
first.taught Saul the faith: Acts <i>9:17,</i> 18.</p>

<p>He further ,adds this wish, "May the Almighty God strengthen
your hearts, and make you worthy of His baptism." But who knows
not, that newborn infants can not be strengthened in their
hearts before baptism? and that, consequently, they cannot
receive baptism worthily (that is, with a holy purpose and
believing hearts), since they know neither good nor evil. Deut.
<i>1:39;</i> nor their right hand from their left, Jonah
<i>4:11; .and</i> do as children do, I Cor. <i>.13:11.</i>
Hence, this wish of Chrysostom, respecting baptism, cannot
apply to them.</p>

<p>Finally, having declared, with what heart and purpose we
must go to baptism, namely not with a doubting heart, he
says, "You who thus receive baptism that you may serve God."
These are certainly plain words, which prove manifestly, that
the baptism of which he speaks is far different from the
baptism of infants, since these are incapable, not only of
going to baptism with an undoubting or assured heart, but also
of going there at all; not less incapable are they of receiving
baptism with the purpose of serving God. Compare this with the
words of Chrysostom, and you will find that they are as
different from infant baptism as heaven is from the earth.</p>

<p><i>Bdpt. Hist., page</i> 461. Palladius, in the <i>Life
of</i> Chrysostom, speaks of an uproar which the Emperor
Theophilus* raised against bishop Chrysostom, persecuting him;
which occurred shortly before Easter. There was no other
alternative for those who sided with the bishop, and fasted
with him, than to go to the Emperor and the Empress, in the
week of confession, and to entreat them with tears, that they
would spare the church of Christ, especially on account of the
feast, and for the sake of those who were to be baptized,
having received sufficient instruction for this purpose;
therefore, they should release their bishop.</p>

<p>Here again are several items from which we may perceive that
in the church of which Chrysos-</p>

<p>It is evident here that either the author is mistaken in the
name, or that a typographical error occurred. Theophilus was
the name of the Patriarch of Alexandria, through whose
instigation, with that of the Empress Eudoria, the Emperor in
question, whose name was Arcadius, was induced to persecute
Chrysostom.Translator.</p>

</div><div id="166"> 

<p>tom was bishop or teacher, baptism was administered after
previous instruction, and upon faith. For, in the first place,
mention is made of the time in which this took place, namely,
shortly before Easter, in the week of confession. Any one who
has but a little experience, will find that that was the time
and week in which it was customary to instruct the candidates
before baptism, hear the confession of their faith, and
properly examine them, in order to baptize them on the
following Easter day. In the second place, mention is made of
those who were to be baptized, and had received sufficient
instruction for it; which so plainly illustrates what we have
aimed to show, namely, that baptism at that time was
administered after previous instruction, that we deem it
unnecessary to add anything further with regard to it, and,
hence, let it suffice.</p>

<h2>OF THE BENEFIT, VIRTUE, AND OPERATION OF BAPTISM</h2> 

<p><i>Chrysostom on Phil., chap. 3,</i> page 405, says, "Christ
has given or ordained baptism as a purgative, and thus we have
spewed out all wickedness, and by it have been made free from
all our sins. The heat has abated, the fever is checked, all
impurities have departed, and through the Spirit all other evil
things have been purged out-those springing from fornication as
well as those having their origin in the vanity of the
mind."</p>

<p>Again, on Heb. 7, "Therefore God gives baptism, that it may
wash away sin, and not increase it.</p>

<p>Again, on Col. <i>3:</i> "Truly, before baptism we were very
impure, but after it we become golden."*</p>

<p>Again, on Heb. 11, "What then constitutes brotherhood, if not
the washing of regeneration (that is, baptism)?"</p>

<p>Who does not perceive by these passages of Chrysostom, that
the baptism of which he speaks, applies in no wise to infants,
but only and exclusively to rational persons; for, when he
first says to those who wished to receive baptism, that they
should (spiritually) take hold of the feet of Christ, and wash
them with their tears, and then say that Christ has given or
ordained baptism for a purgative, and that they had thus spewed
out all wickedness (that is, sin), he sufficiently indicates
thereby that he is not speaking of the baptism of infants,
since, these cannot do the things which he describes as being
connected with baptism.</p>

<p>All these things are still more clearly established by the
following passages from his writings, as we shall show.</p>

<p>In <i>Bdpt. Hist., page</i> 406, Chrysostom, on I Cor. 10,
says, "The passage of the Jews through the Red Sea was a type of
the future baptism." A little further on, he explains this,
saying, "For there it was water, here it is also water; yea,
here it is the washing, and there it was the sea; here they</p>

<br /><cite>* Pure as precious metal.-Pub. all go into the
water, there they did likewise. But would you know the truth of
the matter? There they were delivered from Egypt, but here from
idolatry; there Pharaoh was drowned, but here the devil; there
Egyptians perished, but here the old man of sin is buried."</cite> 

<p>Again, on John <i>3,</i> Hom. 27, "We have committed many and
grievous sins, and, from youth to old age, have not refrained
from staining our souls therewith; yet God does not require an
account from us, but absolves us therefrom, through the washing
of regeneration (that is, baptism), and has freely given us
righteousness and holiness, "</p>

<p>How could any one speak more plainly and clearly of the true
baptism of believers? For, when in the first passage he says
that in being baptized we are delivered from idolatry, and that
in or through baptism the old man of sin is buried; and in the
second passage declares that they, having committed many and
grievous sins, from youth to old age, are absolved therefrom
through the washing of regeneration, that is, baptism, it again
is very evident that this does not at all apply to children,
since they, never having lived in idolatry, cannot forsake
idolatry; neither can they, who, being yet in their infancy,
have never lived according to the old man, much less have died
unto it, bury the old man of sin in or through baptism;
finally, they who being still infants, have not attained to old
age, cannot or need not be absolved through the washing of
regeneration (that is, by baptism), from the sins which they
have not committed in this life.</p>

<p><i>Bapt. Hist., page 410.</i> That baptism ought not to be
deferred, Chrysostom (Hom. 1, on Acts) expounds with these
words, "If any one say: I am afraid, I answer: If thou art
afraid, thou shouldst have received and observed baptism. But
thou wilt say: Even therefore I do not receive it, because I am
afraid. But art thou not afraid to die in this condition? Thou
sayest: Ahl God is gracious. Well then, therefore receive
baptism, seeing He is so gracious, and helps thee." He says
finally, "It is impossible. I say impossible, that he, who on
such a hope defers baptism, can do anything good or
commendable."</p>

<p><i>Bapt. Hist., page 420.</i> The teachers of the church
sometimes call baptism a consecration; regarding this
Chrysostom says (Hom. 1, on Acts), "Who will fully believe me, how it pains me to the heart,
when someone dies, who has not been consecrated," that is,
baptized. And, a little further on he writes, "What anguish of
soul I experience, when I see how others do not hasten to
baptism till their breath is about to leave them," that is,
when they must die.</p>

<p>These passages of Chrysostom indicate how exceedingly sorry
he was, that some deferred their baptism to the end of life,
who ought to have received it in time; yet not before the time
of faith or repentance, much less in infancy, since he speaks
only of those persons who had voluntarily, and</p>

</div><div id="167"> 

<p>not less presumptuously, neglected their baptism. Hence it
sometimes occurred that persons desired to be baptized in their
sickness, yea, on their deathbed, which this good man opposed
with conclusive arguments. <i>Bapt. Hist, page</i> 412,
Chrysostom says, "The mysteries are glorious and greatly to be
desired, but let no soul that is about to die, receive the
washing; for that is not the time for the mysteries (baptism),
but to make a will; the time for the mysteries (baptism) is
when the mind is sound, and the soul purified."</p>

<p>Finally, Chrysostom here again produces two things which do
not apply to infant baptism. First, his saying that"the
mysteries" (namely, of baptism),"are glorious and greatly to be
desired;" for such a desire cannot exist in infants. Secondly,
his declaration, that"the time for the mysteries (or, for
baptism), is when the mind is sound, and the soul purified;"
for infants neither have nor know unsoundness of mind or
impurity of soul. Hence neither the soundness of their minds
nor the purification of their souls can be promoted or had in
view, and baptism can, for this very reason, have no place with
them.</p>

 
<h1>CHRYSOSTOM'S VIEWS RESPECTING SEVERAL OTHER ARTICLES OF FAITH, ACCORDING TO THE ACCOUNT OF P. J. TWISCK, IN HIS CHRONIJK VAN DEN ONDERGANK DER TYRANNEN, 5th BOOK, PP. 136 AND 137</h1>
<p> "John Chrysostom," he writes,"a celebrated, zealous, and
eloquent teacher or bishop at Constantinople, was expelled from
his bishopric, and relegated into misery; much ignominy and
suffering were inflicted on him, and he died in banishment., "His adherents and people were greatly persecuted by
imperial edicts commanding them also to attend church and hear
their enemies (namely, those of the Roman church), which they
would not do, but held their own meetings in the farthest
outskirts of the city. When this was reported to the Emperor by
the bishop, a squad of soldiers was immediately sent to the
place, who with sticks and stones dispersed the meeting, robbed
those who had assembled of their goods, and apprehended such as
could not make their escape. Finding it impossible to meet in
public, they chose voluntary banishment, and forthwith
departed, each his own way. Besides this, the adherents of
Chrysostom were unjustly accused of having caused a
conflagration, which the common people, out of spite towards
Chrysostom, had kindled in the temple in which he had taught;
on account of which they had to suffer much; the cruelty
practiced being as great as that of the first persecutions., "Again, the aforesaid John Chrysostom, also called, John
Goldenmouth,* on account of his golden or excellent teachings,
and his eloquent tongue taught from Matt. 5, that we ought not
to</p>

<br /><cite>* Although the Papists sometimes have this
Goldenmouth in their mouth, they nevertheless regard his
teachings as heresies.</cite> 
<p>swear at all, neither rightly nor
falsely, and concludes very forcibly, with many words from the
passage, Matt. 5:34: 'Swear. not at all,' that it is not lawful
for a Christian to swear. He conclusively refutes all
objections, and maintains that now we ought not to swear. Read
yourselves his full exposition of said passages."</p>

<p>Prior to him, likewise Haimus, on Rev. 10, writes, saying,
That all swearing is now prohibited unto men, it being lawful
only for God and the angels, who neither deceive, nor can be
deceived.</p>

<p>Seb. Franck notes the following concerning this
Haimus, "Haimus, the teacher also wrote a great deal against the
pope and the Roman church; among other things, that swearing is
lawful only for God and the angels, but to men all swearing is
forbidden. On Rev. 10, <i>Chron., Roman. Kett., letter
H.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-This view (that we ought not to swear), is also
ascribed to Isiodorus. <i>Tract. Loop der Werelt, page
99.</i></p>

<p>We return to the account of P. J. Twisck, concerning
Chrysostom, <i>page</i> 136, col. 2. He writes, "This GOldenmouth, John Chrysostom, taught also mightily
against cruelty, tyranny, war, and bloodshed, maintaining that
it is altogether improper for Christians to wage war, and that
peace and quiet are to be taught in the kingdom of Christ.
Christ," he says,"compels not, drives not away, oppresses not,
but accords to each His free will, saying: 'If any man
will."'</p>

<p>Read also, on Matt. 13, how he explains that the tares (to
which the heretics are compared) are not to be rooted out,
which, he says, Christ spoke for the purpose of preventing and
forbidding war and bloodshed. No violence is to be employed in
heavenly things; the wicked teachings which have proceeded from
heretics, are to be reprehended and anathematized; but the men
we must spare</p>

<p>Again, he is also greatly opposed to the worshiping of the
saints, saying that God is not like the tyrants, with whom
intercession is necessary; and that we are not to confess our
sins to any one except to God alone."Thou must confess thy
sins," he says,"that thou mayest eradicate them. If thou art
ashamed to confess to any one, confess them daily in thy soul.
I say not, that thou shalt confess them to thy fellow servant,
that he may curse them and upbraid thee; but tell them to God,
who alone can heal thee from them, and follow herein the
prophet, who says: 'Commit thy way unto the Lord . . . and he
shall bring it to pass"' (Ps. 37:5).</p>

<p>And on Matt. 23, he says with many excellent words: That
with human doctrines, we serve God in vain, and that there is
no other testimony of the truth, no other certain test of
heresy, than the Holy Scriptures, and no other way by which we
may know which is the Christian church.</p>

<p>Again, Chrysostom says, "When the Roman Empire shall be put
down, then shall antichrist come." On Matt. 24, he says, "He
speaks not un</p>

</div><div id="168"> 

<p>reasonably, who by the abomination of desolation understands
antichrist, who, it is thought, will shortly afterwards rise,
and will occupy the holy place of the church, under the name of
Christ." Also, on II Thess. 2, "When the Empire shall be waste
and vacant, then antichrist shall occupy it, and endeavor to
draw to him the kingdom of God and men."</p>

<p>Further, on Matt. 24, "Beloved, be not moved, when antichrist
does the works of Christ, and in the sight of Christians,
performs all the offices of Christ; for Satan himself can
transform himself into an angel of light. What wonder then,
that his servants assume the garb of servants of righteousness,
and a semblance of Christianity., "The Jewish abomination is to be understood as having
reference not only to the Jewish war, but, in a spiritual
sense, also to antichrist, who in the last time, shall sit in
the holy place, occupying the chief places of the church, and
leading the souls of men away from God. This is very likely the
one of whom Paul says that he shall oppose and exalt himself
above all that is called God, or that is worshiped; so that he
as God sitteth in the temple of God, shewing himself that he is
God. He, standing in the holy place, has laid waste the church
of God with multitudes of heresies."</p>

<p>Then he says, "Since the Lord Jesus knew what great
destruction would come in the last days, He commanded that the
Christians who are in Christendom, if they would always
continue in the true faith, should resort only to the Holy
Scriptures; for, if they would look to other things, they would
be offended and corrupted, and not understand what the true
church is, and, in that way, fall into this horrible
abomination, which sitteth in the holy place of the
church.", "Thus," writes. Twisck,"Chrysostom, Augustine, Gregory,
Ambrose, Jerome,:and most of the ancient teachers, though the
Papists esteem them greatly with their mouths, would be nothing
better than Roman heretics, and if they were still alive, and
would teach these doctrines, they would have to expect nothing
but fire and sword.", "Finally, in the year 408 Chrysostom was released from his
life of vexation and exile, in which he suffered much, and fell
asleep in peace." <i>P. J. Twisck, Chron., 5</i>th <i>book,</i>
pages 137 <i>and</i> 138, eol. 1, from <i>Chron. Sebastian
Franck, fol.</i> 56, 92. <i>Tob. Fari, fol.</i> 73.
<i>Merula,</i> fol. 338. <i>Joan. Wales, fol.</i> 166.
<i>Cornelius Hillenius, fol.</i> 41.</p>

<p>- A. D. 390.-Jerome, born of Christian parents at Syridon,
in Illyria, or Dalmatia, and instructed in the Christian
doctrine from his youth, was baptized at Rome, yet not before
he was in the thirtieth year of his age. Bdpt. Hist.,
<i>pages</i> 841, 365, 366, 373, 593. P. <i>J. Twisek,
Chron.,</i> 4th <i>book,</i> page 29, col. 1. Tract, van
<i>den</i> loop <i>der Werelt, page</i> 47, from Erasmus <i>and
Wicelius, in the life of Jerome.</i></p>

<p>In Bapt. Hist., page 374, we read the following, "Jerome
writes in the 78th epistle, that he received his baptism and
white garment at Rome, though we know that he was born of
Christian parents, at Syridon, in Dalmatia. Hence, says the
author, the Christians of that age must not have hastened so
much with infant baptism, as is the case in the present time."
This Jerome, though some pedobaptists, yea, the Papists
themselves, declare him a good and upright teacher,
nevertheless wrote several things of such a nature, that at the
present day they would be pronounced heresy by many of these
same pedobaptists, especially by the Roman church; hence he is
classed among the Roman heretics, that is, among those whose
views are at this day pronounced heresy by the Roman church.
<i>Chron. Seb. Franck, letter H; P. J. Twisck, Chron.,</i> 5th
<i>book,</i> page 138, col. 11.</p>

<p>Touching as to how it stood with baptism at the time of
Jerome, I find, in substance, this annotation, Bapt. Hist.,
page 335, "It is certain, that in the time of Jerome adults were
still baptized in the occidental churches, as may be seen in
his epistle against the errors of John of Jerusalem.</p>

<p>He, in Epist. ad Pammach, and Ambrose, in Epistle 83,
testify that those who desired baptism were called <i>fellow
desirers.</i></p>

<p>H. Montanus writes thus, "Jerome, who also lived about that
time, and, as some say, was an elder at Rome, or, much earlier,
as others suppose, at Jerusalem, also testifies that in his
time it was a prevailing custom, to baptize adults who had been
brought up in the Christian faith, when they desired baptism,
for which reason they were called <i>Competents, as</i> Jerome
states in his letter to Pammaehius." H. <i>Montan. Nietigh.,
pages</i> 74,75.</p>

<p>Having now shown how it stood with baptism at the time of
Jerome, and that the same was administered in the occidental
churches to adults, we shall proceed to Jerome's individual
views and what he has written on this subject, according to
ancient writers.</p>

<p>In <i>Bapt. Hist., page 373,</i> Jerome writes to
Pammachius, "It is customary with us, publicly to instruct for
forty days, those who are to be baptized, and enjoin them to
pray to the Holy Trinity."</p>

<p>D. Vicecomes finally shows, <i>page 375, chap. 41</i> and
<i>44,</i> that Jerome wrote, that in his time they gave those
who were baptized, milk and honey to eat, which, the annotator
remarks, is no food for new-born infants. Moreover, he shows
what is required for true baptism; namely, regeneration,
consisting in the mortifying of the old, and resurrection of
the new man. This he expresses in the following two
passages</p>

<p>Jerome further writes, <i>page 323, lib. 12, Comment. in
Ezechiel.:</i> "We need not only the first birth, but also the
second, in order that we, who are born in the flesh, may be
born again after the Spirit."</p>

<p>Again, <i>page 328, Apol. Contr. Ruin.:</i> "We say that the
old man entirely dies in baptism, and that the new man is
raised with Christ in baptism; that the earthly perishes, and
the heavenly is born."</p>

<p>Then he admonishes the candidates for baptism,</p>

</div><div id="169"> 

<p>how they should conduct themselves before and at baptism; as
well as how those who had already been baptized before many
witnesses, and had made a good confession, ought to manifest
themselves.</p>

<p>Again, <i>page 374, Epist. 83, ad Ocean,</i> he writes, "The
catechumens who are learning the Christian faith must observe
not to have carnal intercourse with women before baptism."</p>

<p>Again the words of Paul, I Tim. <i>6:12,</i> he expounds as
follows, "Thou hast professed a good profession before many
witnesses; which was done through thy baptism, when thou didst
renounce the world and its pomp, before the elders* or
teachers, before the ministers, and before the heavenly
hosts."</p>

<p>In the tract called, <i>Klare en Grondige Bewijsing van
den</i> Doop, printed <i>1581,</i> it is stated, <i>letter
A,</i> Jerome on Matthew, "The Lord commanded His apostles, that
they should first instruct and teach all nations, and then
baptize those instructed, in the sacrament of faith; for it is
not possible for the body to receive the sacrament of baptism,
unless the soul have previously received the true faith."</p>

<p>Who could ever believe that this man at any time defended,
or at least, not opposed but admitted infant baptism, seeing he
opposes it in the places mentioned with such abundant clearness
and explicitness. We note only the last-mentioned passage,
where he certainly says, without the least dissimulation or
exception, that it is not possible for the body to receive the
sacrament of baptism, unless the soul have previously received
the true faith. How can, may, or shall this be explained
otherwise than that there cannot be or consist any other
baptism than that which is received with true faith? for this
is the very idea expressed by his words.</p>

<p>Nevertheless, there are men who ascribe to Jerome a certain
dialogue against Pelagius, in which one Critobulus
interrogates, and one Atticus answers, in this wise: Critobulus
asks, "Why are children baptized?" Atticus replies, "That their
sins may .be forgiven them in baptism.""Why, what sins have
they committed?" asks Critobulus. Atticus answers, "Dost thou
ask me this? let the evangelic trumpet answer thee."</p>

<p>But in order to prove that Jerome defended infant baptism,
it would first have to be shown incontrovertibly, that this
dialogue is Jerome's own production, which we have great reason
to doubt, since the style as well as the matter of the same do
not accord with his other writings, especially those in which
he treats of baptism; moreover, there have of old been forgers,
who, in order to gain greater renown for their own productions,
have ascribed them to celebrated men, or have interpolated
their own opinions into their writings; thus, it has been
proved that the writings of Justin have been interpolated.
<i>Bacent;t. Hist., page 170. H. Montan.,</i></p>

<br /><cite>* The translator says"priests," namely, such
priests as John speaks of, Rev. 1:6: 'And hath made us kings
and priests," etc.</cite> 

<p class="c8">pages 7, 8, 9. Also, the writings of Origen.
Bapt. Hist., pages 283 and 291. H. Mont., pages 29-34, 42,
43.</p>

<p>Yea, in this manner, a whole book, also touching on infant
baptism, has been falsely ascribed to Dionysius, the
Areopagite, who, it is testified, lived in the time of the
apostles; this the Magdeburg pedobaptists themselves show.
<i>Centur. 1, cap. 2.</i> Also, <i>Jac. Mehrning, Bapt. Hist.,
177, 293, 341.</i></p>

<p>Again, even if it could be shown, which is by no means
certain, that this dialogue is Jerome's own production, it
could nevertheless not be proved thereby, that Jerome himself
held the views maintained by one party in the dialogue, namely,
that infants may be baptized. For, why should we not, with
equal justice, ascribe to him the views of the other party,
which demands reasons and proof why they may be baptized? For
one would certainly be his work as much as the other.</p>

<p>Moreover, every intelligent person knows that books that are
written in the form of dialogues, do not always express the
author's individual views, but that frequently the views and
debates of others are handled in them, either to censure them,
expose their errors, or correct them.</p>

<p>Finally, how could it be possible, that any one endowed with
reason and sound judgment should do such contrary things at one
and the same time? We have shown how clearly and correctly he
speaks of baptism of ,adults, yea, recommends it, and not only
this, but how he, though he was born of Christian parents,
remained unbaptized until he was in his thirtieth year-how then
could he admit infant baptism, seeing he decisively opposed it
by doctrine and example? unless it be shown that Jerome wrote
this article on infant baptism before his conversion, or that
he subsequently apostatized from his adopted views, to infant
baptism; but as I can find no account of either we will hold to
our previous declaration.</p>

<h2>JEROME'S VIEWS TOUCHING SEVERAL OTHER MATTERS OF FAITH, ACCORDING TO P. J. TWISCK'S CHRONIJK, ETC., PAGE 129, COL. 1, 2</h2> 
<p> "Jerome, born of Christian parents, and brought up and
instructed in the Christian doctrine, was baptized at Rome, in
the thirtieth year of his age." <i>Erasmus, Grondig Bewijs,
letter A., Mart. Ball.,</i> fol. 102., "Again, Jerome plainly says, respecting the words of the
Supper, that with this bread Christ intended to prefigure,
represent, and show the truth of His body, and in many places
He calls the cup a figure of the blood., "Again, he teaches, on Matt. 16, that the priests have no
more, or just as little, power, to bind or to loose, than the
priests of the Old Testament had, to pronounce the lepers clean
or unclean. The words of the priest made them neither clean nor
unclean, but simply indicated who, according to the law of
Moses, was leprous or not leprous; so now the</p>

</div><div id="170"> 

<p>bishop according to the law of Christ, pronounces, whose
sins are retained, and whose are forgiven., "Again, he also maintains that all days should be esteemed
alike, and that man should constantly keep Easter and
Sabbath., "He would likewise have that men should fast daily, 'for,
what avails it,' says he, 'if you carry around an empty
stomach, for two or three days, and then overload it? Daily you
must hunger, and daily you must cat; you must fast so as not to
injure the body, but to subdue and break the desires.', "Again: 'The Roman church is not to be esteemed more highly
than the church of the whole world, whether of France, or of
Britannia, etc. But to worship one Christ, and to have one
Ruler, or teacher, of the truth, this constitutes a church.'
<i>Chron. Fra., fol. 65, 86.</i>, "Again, of antichrist he says: 'And do we not know that the
coming of antichrist is nigh at hand? He shall sit in the
temple of God, that is to say, in Jerusalem, or in the church,
as I apprehended with more truth. Antichrist shall war against
the heathen and overcome them.', "Again: 'While man lives here, he may be justified, but
after death he has no more opportunity to do good works, though
some controvert this, saying that man may increase or decrease
even after they have died. While we are in this present life,
we may help one another by prayer or deeds; but when we come
before the judgment seat of God, neither Job, nor Daniel, nor
Noah, can pray for any one; then every one must bear his own
burden.' <i>halent. hanius, fol.</i> 112., "Again, Jerome says: 'He that is spiritual never persecutes
him that is carnal. I have learned from the command of the
apostles, to avoid a heretic, but not to burn him. Christ came
not to smite, but to be smitten. He that is smitten, follows
Christ; but he that smites, follows antichrist.', " 'Again, the Lord commanded His apostles that they should
first instruct and teach all nations, and then baptize those
instructed, in the sacrament of faith; for it is not possible
for the body to receive the sacrament of baptism, unless the
soul have previously received the true faith."' P. J.
<i>Twisck, Chron., 4th book, page</i> 129.</p>

<p>That also in Thessalia infant baptism was not much practiced
at this time, A. D. 390, is shown by Socrates, <i>Bacent;t.
Hist., cent;.</i> 363, <i>book 5, chap.</i> 21, with these
words, "Besides, I also know of another custom in Thessalia,
namely, that there they baptize only on Easter days; hence
nearly all, few excepted, die without baptism." See also, H.
<i>Montan. Nietigheyd, page 71.</i></p>

<p>But someone may ask: With what words is it expressed in the
passage cited, that also in Thessalia infant baptism was not
much practiced in A. D. 390, which the writer so confidently
asserts. I answer: He expresses two reasons whereby he proves
it; in the first place, because, as he says that it was the
custom there, to baptize only on Easter days, which indicates
that said baptism was not, as Cyprian and his followers had
commanded, administered to new-born infants, for these were not
born just on Easter days, and, hence, could not be baptized on
Easter days, from which it follows that the custom of baptizing
on Easter days, was not instituted for new-born infants, but
for adult persons, who could prepare themselves for that time.
In the second place, when he says that therefore nearly all,
few excepted, died without baptism, it is certainly obvious
from this, that all who died without baptism, had not been
baptized in their infancy, and that, consequently, many persons
were found at this time, who allowed their children to remain
unbaptized.</p>

<p>A. D. 391.-It is stated that Augustine (notwithstanding he
afterwards became infected with the doctrine of infant
baptism), though born of a Christian mother, and the descendant
of Christian ancestors, was not baptized before he was in his
thirtieth year <i>(Nauclerus, book 14, Generat.,</i> says, in
his thirty-third year, by bishop Ambrose, at Milan, on
Easter).</p>

<p>Jacob Mehrning and H. Montanus thus relate this, namely,
that Monica, Augustine's mother, who, though born of Christian
parents, was not baptized until she had reached adult years,
likewise did not have her son Augustine baptized in his
infancy; but that he was baptized when he was already
thirty-three, others say, thirty, years old. It is true, we
read, say they, that, having become a youth, and fallen very
sick, he desires to be baptized; and also, that his mother was
engaged then in preparing him for baptism. But when he suddenly
recovered from his sickness, his baptism was deferred.
Augustine was at that time of such an age, that if he had been
baptized, it would really not have been infant baptism, but a
baptism which might have been counted with the baptism of
adults, had it sprung from voluntary resolution, for it should
have been connected, as Augustine himself declares with his
faith and the confession of the name of Christ, which cannot be
the case in the baptism of infants.</p>

<p>Augustine there also relates why his mother at that time
deferred his baptism, namely, because she, foreseeing the many
and great billows of temptation which would roll over his head
in his youthful years, feared that the guilt of his sins, after
the washing of baptism, would be the greater and more
dangerous, which he himself and the whole family, with the
exception of his father, then believed. He also tells us, that
there were others, too, at that time, who put off or omitted
the baptism of their children, from such considerations.
<i>Bapt. Hut., pages 363, 364. H. Montan. Nietigh., pages 71,
72.</i></p>

<p>It appears, moreover, that on that occasion not only
Augustine was baptized upon the confession of his faith, but
also his son Adeodatus, and his friend Alipius, concerning
which we find this notice. <i>Bapt. Hist., page 444,</i>
Augustine, bishop of</p>

</div><div id="171"> 

<p>Hippon, in Africa, when he was thirty-three years old, was
baptized at Milan, by bishop Ambrose, together with Alipius,
and Adeodatus, his natural son, who was fifteen years old at
the time. Of this, <i>Augustine,</i> in the <i>9th book, 6th
chap.,</i> of his <i>Confessions,</i> says, "When the time had
come, that I was to have my name entered on the register of the
candidates for baptism, I left the country, and again journeyed
to Milan. My dear friend Alipius desired to be baptized with
me. Alipius, who was qualified for it, on account of his
humility, and the dominion he had over his body, so that in
case of emergency, he would have traveled barefoot in winter
through the snow in Italy, accompanied me. We took with us the
child (that is, the youth) Adeodatus, begotten by me in sin.
Thou, O Lord, didst form him well, according to both soul and
body. He was now about fifteen years old, and excelled many
worthy and learned men." A little further on, he says, "We have
made him our equal, O Lord, in the reception of Thy grace, in
order to be further trained up in Thy law and school; <i>we are
baptized,</i> and the care of our old life has been taken away
from us. I could not be satisfied in those days, with the
wonderful sweetness which I experienced in the contemplation of
the mysteriousness of Thy counsel, O Lord, with regard to the
salvation of the human race. O how I wept, amidst songs of
praise. The tears ran down my cheeks." Thus far, Augustine.</p>

<p>NOTE. <i>A. D.</i> 392.-The Apollinarians, who derived their
origin from Apollinaris, denied that Christ adopted His
humanity from the virgin Mary, saying that the word became
flesh. P. J. <i>Tzuisck, Chron., 4th book, page</i> 130, from
<i>Tripart., lib. 9. Vincent. Hist., cap. 44. Zeg., fol.
189.</i></p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 393.-Valentinian, or Valens, the son of
Christian parents (Valentinian and Justina), was induced to
journey to Milan, to be baptized by Ambrose, but was
treacherously murdered on the way by one Arbogastes. <i>H.
Montan., page</i> 70, from <i>Socrat., lib. 4, cap.</i> 9,
<i>26.</i> H. Montanus, however, erroneously, fixes the date of
this occurrence about A. D. 380.</p>

<p>My dear friends, is it not a sad thing, that this man,
namely Augustine, who thus defended baptism upon faith, yea
confirmed it with his own example, and the example of his son
Adeodatus. and his friend Alipius, whom he had admonished
thereto, should ultimately fall so far as to admit, yea to
become a defender of infant baptism I Surely, it is a
lamentable matter. For, no one can deny, that in the beginning
right after his baptism, he was exceedingly zealous in defense
of the true baptism, which is received with a penitent heart;
but, that in, the course of time he apostatized to infant
baptism, can likewise not ,be denied by any lover of truth.
Still, the example of Augustine, his son Adeodatus, and his
friend Alipius, serves to confirm our faith, inasmuch as we see
that in Augustine's time the principal Christians allowed their
children to remain unbaptized, until they were grown up and, of
their own accord desired baptism; for, thus did Monica with her
son Augustine, and Augustine with his son Adeodatus, and his
friend Alipius, which is a clear proof of the matter in
question, namely, that not infant baptism, but baptism upon
faith, was practiced among the chief Christians.</p>

<h2>THE CONVERSION OF EUVODIUS, WHO FROM A WORLDLY WARRIOR BECAME A SOLDIER OF CHRIST, IN THE TIME OF AUGUSTINE</h2> 

<p>In the 8th <i>chapter of</i> the <i>9th book</i> of his
<i>Confessions,</i> Augustine, after speaking of his own
baptism, makes the following confession to the Lord, in regard
to the baptism of 8uvodius, "Thou, O Lord, who causest those
that are of the same mind, to dwell in one house, hast joined
to us a companion, a young nobleman, called Euvodius, a native
of our city. He, who, when following war, commanded the legions
of the Empire, was, before us, converted unto Thee, and
baptized, and, having abandoned secular war, has betaken
himself to Thy war. We were together; together we had one will
to serve Thee, and considered in what place we might best do
this." These are his own words, which we read at the place
indicated above, and from them we may see how the church
increased at that time-not through the addition of infants, but
through the conversion and baptism of adult and rational
persons. With this we leave Augustine, and the baptism of his
companion Euvodius.</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 397.-About A. D. 397, it is stated that
Epiphanius,* who subsequently became bishop of Cyprus, was
baptized, together with his sister, as it appears, in the
presence of his friend and spiritual father Lucian. Of this, D.
Vicecomes gives the following account, from Simon Metaphrastes,
<i>Bapt. Hist., page</i> 578. <i>hicecom., lib. 1,</i> cap.
30, "When the Gospel had been read, the bishop, after the
baptism, went and commanded Epiphanius and his sister to go in,
and with them also Lucian, who became Epiphanius' spiritual
father in holy baptism.</p>

<p>In <i>Bdpt. Hist., page 580, lib. 5,</i> cap. 34,
Metaphrastes writes of Epiphanius, that immediately upon
receiving the doctrine and baptism, the latter, together with
an hundred and eight.other persons, received the holy Supper,
from Bishop Stephen.</p>

<p>NOTE.-In the time of Arcadius and Honorius, about A. D. 397,
it was resolved, at Toledo, among other things, "That if any
one, after baptism, engages in war, though he have committed
nothing special in the war, he shall never be ordained a
deacon." <i>Seb. Franck, Chron. Rom. Concil., fol.</i> 73, Col.
1.</p>

<p>As to the person who baptized Epiphanius and</p>

<br /><cite>* P. J. Twisck places this Epiphanius in the
year 377, but this may be a typographical error; the figure 7
having been substituted for the figure 9.</cite> 

</div><div id="172"> 

<p>his sister, as well as administered the Supper to them, we
pass by; it suffices us, that this mode of baptism still
obtained at that time and in the church where this took place;
and that persons were found who administered it, as well as
such who were willing to have it administered unto them.
Notwithstanding infant baptism had already made great inroads
at that time into many places, this baptism was nevertheless
administered to persons born of Christian parents, as has been
sufficiently shown previously.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 400.-About this time there flourished, as a
writer, the afore-mentioned Epiphanius, who, by his writings,
has shed much light on the subject of baptism, it being
sufficiently apparent from all the circumstances relating to
him, that he held sound views with regard to the same. Of this,
Jacob Mehrning and H. Montanus have given the following
account, "Epiphanius, Bishop of Salamina, in Cyprus, A. D. 400,
or thereabouts, in speaking of baptism, which he frequently
does in his writings, always speak of it in such a manner that
it does not include infants;and although occasion often
presents itself to him, to speak of infant baptism, yet he
never does so; from which we may readily conclude that he did
not esteem it much, or that in his time, it was not yet
customary in that island." In' Auchoratus he says, "You must not
admit everyone who is instructed in the faith and desires to
come to holy baptism, to this ordinance, simply because he has
told your children, that he believes in the Lord; but he must
also, with express words, even as the church, our common
mother, ours as well as yours, has received it, learn and say:
'I believe in one God, the Father, the Almighty.' etc."</p>

<p>Again, in another place <i>(Contra Haereses, lib. 1, Tom. 1,
Haeresi. 8), "This</i> great circumcision, baptism, circumcises
us from sin, and seals us in the name of God." <i>Bapt. Hist.,
page 366. Nietigh., page 74.</i></p>

<p>When, therefore, Epiphanius, in the first passage, says, "You
must not admit everyone who is instructed in the faith, and
desires to come to baptism, to this ordinance," and then adds
that he must. also confess, saying, "I believe," he plainly
indictes that such baptism can certainly not be administered to
infants, because they are not only unable to confess the faith,
but have not even the capability or qualification to believe,
upon which faith and confession alone he' admits baptism.</p>

<p>When, in the second passage, he says, "This great
circumcision, baptism, circumcises us from sin," he does not
mean to say thereby, as our opponents at this day assert, that
baptism has come in the place of circumcision, so that, even as
in the time of the Old Testament, the male infants were
circumcised, so now, in the time of the New Testament, the
infants must be baptized. O no! for this appears by no means.
But he says that baptism is a great circumcision, which
circumcises us from sin, which certainly does not apply to
infants, that have never sinned, and, consequently, cannot be
circumcised from their sins by baptism. With this we leave the
views of Epiphanius on the subject of baptism, and proceed to
what is related of his reproving image worship, according to
the account of P. J. Twisck."Epiphanius," he says,"an ancient
teacher, flourished in this time, who greatly opposed the
worshiping of images, of Mary, or of any other creature. He
said: 'Beloved children, be mindful not to bring any images in
the church, or to erect them over the graves of the saints; but
bear God constantly in your hearts."'</p>

<p>Once, when he went into a Christian church, and observed a
painted curtain at the door, bearing the picture of Christ or
of some saint, he tore it down, because it was contrary to
Scripture, and advised the sexton to bury the corpse of some
poor person in it; and when he had sent another curtain in its
place, he commanded that they should no more hang up curtains
like the former, in the church,"Which," said he,"is contrary to
our religion and faith." P. J. <i>Twisck, Citron., 4th book,
page 119, eol. 2, and page 120, col. 1,</i> from <i>Socrat.,
'lib. 6. Tripart., lib. 10. Leonh., lib. 2. Citron. Seb.
Franck, '135. Tob. Fabr., fol. 66, 67. Fransch. Ala., fol. 22.
Dani. Saut., lib. 1.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-In regard to his teaching against image worship, see
<i>Samuel heltius,</i> in <i>Geslacht-register, page 120.</i>
Epiphanius taught at this time that the Father, Son, and Holy
Ghost are to be worshiped, but that no one should worship Mary,
or any other woman, or human being, since this honor belongs to
God alone, and must not be accorded even to angels. Again, that
the women should not say</p>

<p>We honor the queen of heaven. Tom. <i>2. Haeres., lib. 3.
Haeres. 79, in. Geslacht-register, page 29.</i></p>

<p>Concluding the fourth century, as also we will do, P. J.
Twisck says, "Baptism was administered twice a year, at Easter
and at Pentecost and this, to a great extent is still done to
adult believers and catechumens." <i>Citron., page 134.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-Besides this, that the true order of the baptism of
Jesus Christ was practiced in this century by the orthodox
believers, many who belonged to the Roman church deferred
(though erring in other matters) the baptism of their children
till they came to aduft years, as is evident, for instance, in
the case of Constantine the Great, whom Helena, his Christian
mother, kept from baptism, but afterwards admonished to it; of
Theodosius, who, being born of Christian parents, was baptized
at Milan, upon his faith; of Valens who was mentioned above.
With regard to the baptism of Constantine, see Rom, <i>Adelaer,
edition 1642, page 211,</i> from <i>Eusebius and Socrat.</i> Of
the baptism of Theodosius, see tract <i>van den loop der
Wereldt,</i> printed <i>1611,</i> in the article on baptism;
also <i>De gantsch Klare en Grondige Bewijsinge, nopende het
doopsel.</i></p>

 

 <h1>AN ACCOUNT OF THOSE WHO SUFFERED IN THE FOURTH CENTURY </h1>
</div><div id="173"> 
<h2>SUMMARY OF THE MARTYRS OF THE FOURTH CENTURY</h2> 

<p>[This lamentable time commenced with the Tenth General
Persecution, instituted by Diocletian, and prosecuted by
Maximian, his associate; which caused a very severe, and
distressing state of affairs, with respect to the violence as
well as the long 'duration of the persecution.</p>

<p>In order to proceed systematically, we have presented
separately each year with its respective martyrs. In the first
year of this persecution Anthimus and many others at Nicomedia;
Phileas, Cassianus; Eulalia and Eucratis, aged virgins, laid
down their lives for the evangelical truth.</p>

<p>In the second year, Euplius, Pancratius, a youth of fourteen
years; Justus; Felix of Thibaris; the two brothers, Primus and
Felicianus, suffered martyrdom.</p>

<p>In the third year: Apphianus, Ulpianus, Aedesius, Agathopius
and Theodulus; Julitta of Iconia; forty youths, laid down their
lives.</p>

<p>In the fourth year Sylvanus, Januarius, Sosius, Proculus,
Pelagia, Theonas, Cyrenia, and Juliana, were martyred.</p>

<p>In the fifth year Theodosia, a virgin of Tyre, Pamphilius, a
friend of Eusebius, at Caesarea, were put to death.</p>

<p>In the sixth year Ennathas, a virgin from the city of
Scythopolis; Catharina, of Alexandria, suffered death.</p>

<p>In the seventh year Ares, Promus, and Elias, at Askalon;
Peter Abselamus; the three sisters, Biblis, Aquilina, and
Fortunata, poured out their blood.</p>

<p>In the eighth year two sisters from Antioch; Irene, with her
two sisters, Peter Nilus and P. Mythius; forty who were
beheaded; Martionilla, Euphratesia, seven brothers and others
were compelled to die.</p>

<p>In the ninth year Lucian, elder at Antioch, Peter, Faustus,
Didius, and Ammonius, Anysia, a girl of Thessalonica, and
Demetrius, suffered death.</p>

<p>In the tenth year Eugenius Auxentius, Maodatius, and many
others were put to death.</p>

<p>Then follow two other persecutions, one under Lucinius, the
other under Julian, which are called the eleventh and the
twelfth persecutions.</p>

<p>Under Lucinius suffered Basileus, Ammon; the two brothers,
Donatian and Rogatian, of whom the one was baptized, and the
other not.</p>

<p>Under Julian were slain John and Paul, who opposed war; and
some were killed under the Emperor Valens.</p>

<p>After these details we conclude the account of this
century.] <i>A. D.</i> 301.-"At this time," writes P. J.
Twisck,"the persecution was very severe; for when the Emperor,
namely, Diocletian would divert himself in the theater, the
whole multitude of the people called to him ten times, that the
Christians should not be tolerated, and twelve times, that they
should be exterminated." <i>Chron., 4th book, cent;. 85, col.
1,</i> from Merul., fol. 237. <i>Leonh. lib. 1.</i></p>

<p>In the preceding century, in the year <i>284,</i> we
mentioned, in connection with the beginning of the reign of
Diocletian, the first bloody edict, issued by this Emperor
against the pious and steadfast Christians, upon which followed
the death of some of them, as may be seen in the cases of
Claudius, Asterius, Neon, Zenobius, and the pious Christian
women, Nuina, Theonilla, Zenobia, sister of the afore-mentioned
Zenobius, etc., most of whom died at Tarsus, in Cilicia, the
birthplace of the apostle Paul, for the testimony of Jesus,
their Saviour. This continued from the aforesaid year until the
close of that century, as we have related in the proper
place.</p>

<p>But in the same place we have also made mention of a second
edict by the same Emperor, which, about nineteen years
afterwards, was followed by the most violent persecution of the
Christians. Of this we promised to speak more fully, and now
purpose to do so, having come to the very time in which
commenced this, the severest and most grievous persecution,
which is called the tenth.</p>

<h2>OF THE TENTH GENERAL PERSECUTION OF THE CHRISTIANS, UNDER DIOCLETIAN, COMMENCED A. D. 302</h2> 

<p>Various eminent writers have made mention of this awful and
lamentable deed of the Emperor Diocletian, and they cannot
sufficiently wonder at two things: In the first place, that any
one who is at all a human being could commit such great
cruelties on his fellow men, as Diocletian inflicted upon the
Christians. In the second place, that the Christians, frail men
as they were, could endure all this, and not only this, but
that many of them, from love to Jesus Christ, and because of
the certain hope of their reward, manifested great joy in their
sufferings. We shall first speak of the former, and then of the
latter as follows.</p>

<h2>THE CAUSE AND SEVERITY OF THIS PERSECUTION, ACCORDING TO THE ACCOUNT OF P. J. TWISCK, FROM VARIOUS ANCIENT AND CELEBRATED AUTHORS</h2> 

<p>These two Emperors (namely, Diocletian and Maximian) jointly
governed the empire, in harmony and constancy, and remained
undivided. However, when they had reigned about ten years, they
took counsel together, and resolved to ex</p>

</div><div id="174"> 

<p>terminate the Christians, because the discord of religion
caused great dissensions, both in the households and in the
Roman Empire., "The apostate Christians played the part of instigators and
firebrands in the rising of this persecution, holding out to
the Emperors the hope, that the Christians could be
exterminated. The persecution which ensued thereupon, is
considered the most grievous."</p>

<p>Then he writes, "But the enemies of the truth took the
occasion to incite the Emperor Diocletian against the
Christians, from a certain conflagration in the city of
Nicomedia-at that time the place where the Emperors were wont
to reside-by which the palace of the Emperor was totally
destroyed. With this calamity they charged the Christians. The
Emperor, enraged beyond measure on this account, easily
believed the slanderers, thinking he had sufficient reason for
it. He accordingly, in the nineteenth year of his reign, which
coincides with A. D. 302, issued a public decree (as was done
in the days of Antiochus), that everyone, in every place,
should sacrifice to the gods of the Emperors; and that he who
should refuse to do so, should be punished with death; also,
that the churches or meeting places, and the books of the
Christians should be utterly destroyed. Yea, there was scarcely
a large city in the empire, in which not daily a hundred
Christians, or thereabouts, were slain. It is also recorded
that in one month seventeen thousand Christians were put to
death in different parts of the empire, so that the blood which
was shed colored red many rivers. Some were hanged, others
beheaded, some burned, and some sunk by whole shiploads in the
depths of the sea."</p>

<p>As touching the fearful tortures inflicted, he then writes
thus, "These tyrants had some of them dragged through the
streets, tied to the tails of horses, and after they were
mangled and bruised, they had them put back into prison, and
placed upon beds of potsherds, so that rest might be more
excruciating for them than actual torment. Sometimes they bent
down with great force the branches of trees, and tied one leg
to one branch, and the other to another, and then let the
branches spring back into their natural position, so that their
limbs were shockingly rent in pieces. They cut off the cars,
noses, lips, hands, and the toes of many, leaving them only the
eyes, to inflict still more pain upon them. They sharpened
wooden pegs, which they inserted between the flesh and the
nails; and had lead or tin melted, and poured as hot as
possible over their bare backs." <i>Chron., 3d book, p. 78,
col. 1, 2, and page 79, col. 1, froth Euseb., lib. 8, cap. 2,
3, 16, 17, 18. Fasc. Temp., fol. 96. Chron. Mich., fol. 196.
Chron. Carionis, fol. 248, 249. Chron. Seb. Fr., fol. 19.</i>
Paid. <i>Mertd., fol. 232, 238, 239. Pieter Messiw, fol. 148.
Chron. Leonh., lib. 1. Hist. Andra, fol. 175, 176. Jan Crcsp.,
fol. 66, 67, 68, 70. A. Schri., lib. 13, fol. 349. 350. Hist.
D. Matth. Jud., lib. 4, cap. 3.</i></p>

<h2>FURTHER STATEMENT OF THE CAUSE AND SEVERITY OF THIS PERSECUTION, ACCORDING TO THE ACCOUNT IN THE INTRODUCTION TO THE MARTYR'S MIRROR</h2> 

<p>In A. D. <i>302,</i> commenced the tenth persecution of the
Christions, namely, in the 19th year of the reign of Emperor
Diocletian; for although it had been smouldering previously
already, it was in this year, that through the edicts, it was
caused to break forth in flames. It was so great as to exceed,
not only in cruelty, but also in duration, all the former ones,
for under the tyrannous Emperors, Diocletian, Maximian,
Maxentius, and Maximin, it lasted twelve years, and this
principally in the east., "Eusebius, who lived to see this persecution, gives a full
description of it. How awful it was, we may read in his church
history, book 8. He writes that the cause of it was the great
liberty enjoyed by the Christians, who had attained to great
distinction. Thus it occurred, says the author of the
<i>Introduction,</i> that Diocletian first issued decrees
commanding that all the churches or meeting places of the
Christians should be demolished, and the Holy Scriptures
burned. Then another decree followed, to the effect, that the
leaders, that is, the teachers and ministers of the churches,
should be compelled to sacrifice to the gods, or be put to
death. Then the tormenting and putting to death was extended
also over the common people of the Christians.* Some were torn
with sharp irons, others lacerated with hooks, some burned with
red-hot plates; some were compelled to sacrifice, and even
though they did not sacrifice, it was nevertheless proclaimed
that they had sacrificed, " <i>Introduction, fol. 42, col. 1,
2,</i> from <i>Baronius, in Chron., A. D. 302, num. 1.</i></p>

<h2>FURTHER ACCOUNT OF THE CAUSE AND SEVERITIES OF THE ABOVE-MENTIONED PERSECUTION, ACCORDING TO THE ACCOUNT OF J. GYSIUS</h2> 

<p>He writes, "In A. D. 302, in the 19th year of his reign, the
Emperor Diocletian instituted a great and unmerciful
persecution against the Christians, which is called the Tenth
Persecution. Of this persecution, Salpitius Severus, speaks
thus: 'About fifty years after Valerian, under the reign of
Diocletian and Maximian, there arose the most bitter
persecution, which for ten consecutive years ravaged God's
people. At this time the whole world was stained with the holy
blood of the martyrs; for men hastened emulously to these
glorious and famous contests, that is, to martyrdom, for the
name of the Lord; and to obtain, through a worthy and honorable
death, the honor which belongs to a martyr was then sought with
more eagerness, than at the present time, through a false
ambition,</p>

<br /><cite>* The author writes, "In Egypt they were beheaded
in such eat numbers, that the executioners grew tired, and
their swords came dull from cutting. The Christians went unto
death gladly, without being bound, fearing lest they should not
be there in time to die as martyrs. '-Fol. 41.</cite> 

</div><div id="175"> 

<p>men seek after a bishopric. Never was the world so greatly
depopulated as through this persecution, and never were greater
triumphs gained by us, than when by these ten years of
slaughter we could not be conquered.'" S<i>alpit. Sever. Hist.
Sacr.</i>, "In this persecution, Diocletian also employed his
associate, Maximian Herculeus, a man hard, cruel, faithless,
and licentious by nature, who in all things obeyed Diocletian's
behests. In this persecution Diocletian raged against those in
the East, and Maximian against those in the West."</p>

<p>The same author then mentions different causes for this
persecution, one of which he describes in the following
manner, "The Emperor Diocletian, determined to restore the Roman
Empire to its ancient flourishing condition, and being desirous
therefore, to re-establish all the customs which seemed to be
trampled upon, endeavored also to prevent and abolish the
difference which he found to exist in the matter of worship,
seeking first of all to exterminate the Christian religion as
one which cursed and rejected all idolatry. There were very
many philosophers and sophists who instigated the Emperor to
this, and confirmed him in his purpose. By violent and satiric
writings they incited the Emperor and all the princes and
judges, ridiculed the Christian religion and charged it with
being an innovation, falsehood, and wicked superstition. On the
other hand, they extolled the heathen religion as the most
ancient, together with the worship of the gods, who as they
said, ruled the world by their power and majesty., "Among these instigators, besides Apollinius, were Porphyry,
a philosopher, who from a Jew had become a Christian, and from
a Christian an apostate; and Hierocles, a man of great
popularity. Against Porphyry wrote, Methodius, bishop of Tyre,
Eusebius, and Apollinaris; and against Hierocles wrote this
same Eusebius. Lactantius wrote against both, and all others of
the same stamp.</p>

<p>Touching the torments, he writes among other things the
following, "It would take too long to recount in writing, all
the different manners in which, through the instigation of the
devil, the Christians were put to death at this particular
time. Beating, scourging, and lacerating the skin with all
manner of sharp instruments, were simply preparatories for
severer torments that brought on death. Over some, molten lead
was poured; some were roasted before glowing coals, with
longcontinued torments (as we have shown in another place);
others had the fingers of both hands pierced with sharp awls
and needles, which were inserted between the flesh and the
nails; of others we read that after having been beaten on the
bare body for a long time with thin rods and leaden plates,
they were cast as food before bears, lions, leopards, and other
beasts." A little further on he says, "Some were suffocated with smoke of a slow fire of moistened
combustibles; others, whose noses, ears, and hands had been cut
off, were suf fered to roam in misery about the country, as a
terror to other, unknown Christians."</p>

<p>As touching the places where these cruelities were inflicted
upon the defenseless and innocent Christians, the
afore-mentioned author writes, "This persecution extended over the whole world -Asia,
Africa, Europe, and all the islands, especially Cecilia,
Lesbos, and Sonnus."</p>

<p>Then, after having related the destruction of several
cities, he says, "Many other cities had to taste in their whole
body the bitter cup of this persecution; especially, Thebes and
Antino, in Egypt; Nicopolis, in Thracia; Aquileia, in Italy,
where all the Christian believers were slain; Florence,
Bergamo, Verona, Naples, Beneventum, and Venusia; in Gallia,
Marseilles and Treves, where Rictionarus proceeded with such
violence and cruelty, in this matter, that the blood which was
shed, colored many rivers; in Germany, the city of Augusta, and
even Spain, Britannia, Rhetia, and other provinces were not
exempt." loh. Gys. <i>Hist., fol. 22, col. 2-4, and fol.</i>
23, col. 1, 2, from <i>Euseb., lib. 7. Oros., lib. 7, cap. 26,
27. Nic., lib. 7. Idem, lib. 7. Multis. cap. Vinc., in SQeculo,
lib. 12. Sabell. Ennead, lib. 7 and 8.</i></p>

<h2>NOTICE TO THE READER</h2> 

<p>Before we proceed to give a special account of the martyrs
who were put to death in this persecution, we deem it necessary
to call the attention of the reader to the following points: 1.
That after A. D. 300, that is, in the beginning of this
century, many errors began to arise among some of those who
were called Christians, especially among those who belonged
under the Roman dominion. Yea, they went so far as to resort to
carnal weapons (which, however, had already previously been
done by some); through which the defenseless and meek lambs of
Christ suffered not a little distress, fear, and sorrow.</p>

<p>2. That, besides the martyrs of the true faith, some of the
aforesaid class suffered themselves to be killed for their
opinions; whereby the death and the glorious martyrdom of the
true Christian believers were not a little obscured.</p>

<p>3. That, in order to distinguish these from the former, we
have exerted our utmost diligence, so that as far as we know,
there are not found among the martyrs of whom we have given, or
may yet give, an account, any who can be shown to have been
guilty of gross errors, much less of the shedding of blood. At
least we have not been able to detect it in any of them, and
hence in accordance with the spirit of love, we must judge and
believe the best of them.</p>

<p>As this persecution under Diocletian and Maximian was not
only very severe, but also of long duration, we have deemed it
well to present its years separately in consecutive order, and
to show what the pious martyrs suffered in each year,
steadfastly confessing with their blood the truth of God.</p>

</div><div id="176"> 

<h2>FIRST YEAR OF THE PERSECUTION COMMENCED A. D. 302</h2> 

<p>The sword of Diocletian had now been drawn from its sheath,
and there remained nothing but the shedding of blood, and
murdering and burning in manifold ways, all directed against
the innocent and defenseless lambs.of Christ; of which we shall
directly give some examples.</p>

<h2>ANTHIMUS; BISHOP OF THE CHURCH OF CHRIST, AT NICOMEDIA, AS ALSO MANY MEMBERS OF HIS CHURCH, BEHEADED IN THAT CITY, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, A. D. 302</h2> 

<p>Among the first martyrs of the Tenth Persecution is counted
Anthimus, who was bishop of the church of Christ at Nicomedia.
It is stated .that he was beheaded in that city for the
testimony of Jesus Christ; as also a great number of that
church, all of whom obtained with him, in great steadfastness,
<i>1st book, fol. 100, col. 1. Acta per Metaphr., 27</i> the
crown of martyrdom. See <i>Abr. Mell. Hist., April. Niceph.
Hist., lib. 7, cap.</i> 6. Also, <i>Acta super Euphrasiam. P.
J. Tzvisck, for the year</i> 204, in <i>Chr., lib. 4.</i></p>

<h2>FULLER ACCOUNT OF THE MARTYRDOM AND DEATH OF ANTHIMUS, AS RECORDED BY J. GYSIUS</h2> 

<p>He writes, "At this time there was also beheaded, after a
glorious confession, Anthimus, bishop of Nicomedia, together
with a great number of the faithful. Nicephorus writes that he
was first most cruelly beaten; that they then bored his heels
through with burning pins, threw him on potsherds, put red-hot
slippers on his feet, tore the skin and flesh from his body,
burned him with torches, stoned him, and finally beheaded him."
The same way trod Tyrannion, bishop of the church of Tyre,
Zenobius of Sidon, Sylvanus of Gaza, and Pamphilius, concerning
whom Eusebius wrote a special book." <i>Joh. Gys., fol.</i> 23,
col. <i>3,</i> from <i>Euseb., lib. 8, cap.</i> 6. <i>Cyprian.,
lib. 7, cap.</i> 6.</p>

<h2>PHILEAS, BISHOP OF THE CHURCH OF JESUS
CHRIST, AT THUMIS, IN EGYPT, BEHEADED AT THAT PLACE, FOR THE EVANGELICAL TRUTH, A. D. <i>302</i></h2> 

<p>It is related that after the death of the aforementioned
martyrs, Phileas, Bishop of the Church of Thumis, in Egypt, was
sentenced to death, and beheaded, by virtue of the edict of the
Emperor, on account of his faith in Jesus Christ, and because
he would not give honor to the gods, nor sacrifice to them.
Jerome has written of him that after he became bishop, he wrote
a very excellent book in praise of the martyrs. In
<i>Catalogo.</i></p>

<p>The author of the <i>Introduction,</i> has left on record
these words concerning him, "Phileas, Bishop at Thumis, who was
entreated by the judge to have regard for his wife and
children, remaining steadfast, nevertheless, was beheaded."
<i>Introduction, fol. 43, col. 1,</i> compared with
<i>Mellinus, 1st book, fol.</i> 101, from <i>Euseb.</i></p>

<h2>AN EXTRACT. FROM THE LETTERS WHICH THE AFOREMENTIONED MARTYR PHILEAS WROTE CONCERNING THE PERSECUTION AT ALEXANDRIA, TO THE CHURCH OF CHRIST AT THUMUS, AND LEFT FOR THE ADMONITION AND CONSOLATION OF ALL BELIEVERS; CONTAINING THE AWFULNESS OF THE TORMENTS INFLICTED ON THE BELIEVERS, AND HOW STEADFASTLY THEY BORE UP UNDER THEM</h2> 

<p>Note.-The first part of the letter of bishop Phileas is
translated thus by Eusebius in his"Church History, 8th book,
10th chapter."</p>

<p>Phileas writes, "The holy martyrs who fought with us, have
left us good examples. Being taught out of the divine
Scriptures; they fixed the eyes of their hearts on God, and
voluntarily, without the least fear, apprehended death for the
sake of the truth. For they constantly bore in mind that our
Lord Jesus Christ became man for our sakes; and that He has
taught us, to fight against sin even unto death. For, being
equal with God, He thought it not robbery, but made Himself of
no 'reputation, and took upon Him the form of a servant. And
being found in fashion as a man, He humbled Himself unto death,
even the death of the cross. The holy martyrs followed His
example, enduring all pain and torment, that they might not
stain the conscience of their faith; for the perfect love which
was in them cast out all fear. It is impossible for me to
describe the power, patience, and steadfastness of the martyrs,
yea, it is scarcely credible except for those who have seen it
with their own eyes; for they were exposed, and every one was
at liberty to inflict upon them whatever contumely or torment
he pleased, and if any invented a new mode of torture, he was
permitted to torment them with it himself."</p>

<p>Thus far tusebius' translation; what now follows, is thus
related by Mellinus, from the above letter of Phileas., "As every heathen had been given full power over the
Christians, to inflict upon them all manner of vexation,
mockery, and ignominy, yea, to put them to death in every way;
they beat some with sticks, others with rods, scourges, whips,
thongs, ropes, or whatever they could the most readily lay hold
of; which spectacle was changed now and then by new kinds of
torture and beating which the Christians had to undergo. Some
of them had their hands tied behind their backs, and were
suspended from a gibbet, and then all their members were
stretched apart by executioner's instruments. They were then,
through the command of the magistrate, scourged with iron rods
on the whole body, not only on their sides, as was customary to
do with murderers, but even on the belly, the shins,</p>

</div><div id="177"> 

<p>buttocks, and some on all the most sensitive parts of the
body. Others were suspended by one hand to the ceiling of a
gallery, and thus stretched limb from limb, which exceeds every
other torture. Others were tied back to back to pillars or
columns, but so that their feet did not touch the ground; and
the more the executioners or their assistants tightened the
ropes, the more were the martyrs tormented by the weight of
their own bodies. And this cruel torment lasted not only while
the President was engaged in examining them, but he often let
them hang a whole day in this torment. While the President or
criminal judge would go from one to the other to examine them
on the rack, he had his servants closely observe the first
ones, to see whether any of them, overcome by the intensity of
the torments, were ready to yield. He also commanded his
executioners that they should tighten the ropes on them the
longer the more. But if they should see that the martyrs were
almost ready to die, then they should take them down, and drag
them over the ground, over stones, shells, potsherds, and
caltrops. For they had no other consideration for the
Christians, than how they might subject them, if it were
possible, to a thousand deaths-just as though they were not
human beings., "Over and above all the tortures mentioned, the enemies of
Christ invented still another mode of torment for his anointed,
or holy martyrs; for after they had tormented them, they placed
some with their feet in the block, and violently stretched
apart their legs, as far as they possibly could, even to the
fourth hole, and there fastened them, so that the bodies of the
martyrs must of necessity lie backwards over the block, yea,
that they, on account of their many wounds, could neither move
nor stir. Others, who had been taken down from the racks or
torture-stakes, were thrown half dead upon the bare ground,
which was far more horrible to behold than when they were still
being tormented. Of these some died under the executioner's
hands, while they were being tormented; others, in whom life
was not yet extinct, were thrown half dead back into prison,
and in a few days perished of pain; others, again, who
triumphed over their long imprisonment, were healed and
restored. These became much stronger in the faith than they had
been before, and when it was left to the free choice of each of
them, either to touch the shameful heathen sacrifices, and
thereby be delivered from all trouble, yea, from death itself,
and be invested with the former freedom; or to refuse to
sacrifice, and receive sentence of death, they without the
least deliberation chose the latter, and boldly went unto
death, knowing full well, that it is written in the Word of
God: 'He that sacrificeth unto strange gods shall be cut off
from the people.' Again 'Thou shalt have no other gods before
me."'</p>

<p>Thus far the words of the martyr Phileas, which he wrote in
a letter to the brethren of the church of Thumis, of which he
was pastor, while he was still in prison, and before he had
received his sentence of death; by which letter he wished to
inform his church of his condition in prison, as well as to
admonish them in the true godliness in Christ, and that they
should steadfastly continue therein after his death, which was
soon to follow. Compare <i>Eusebius,</i> concerning the death
of Phileas, with <i>A. Mellinus, 1st book, fol. 101, col. 2,
3.</i></p>

<h2>CASSIAN, A CHRISTIAN SCHOOLTEACHER, BY THE ORDER OF THE MAGISTRATE PUT TO DEATH BY HIS HEATHEN SCHOLARS, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, AT FORUM CORNELII, A. D. <i>302</i></h2> 

<p>It is stated that in this persecution Cassian, Bishop of the
church at Brescia, in Italy, being compelled to flee on account
of the violent persecution, settled in the city of Forum
Cornelii (at present called Imola), where he established a
school for children. However, the persecution, which also there
broke forth, did not spare him; for shortly afterwards he was
denounced as a Christian, and apprehended. When the judges
asked him what profession or trade he had, he replied that he
was a schoolteacher, and taught children to read and write. He
was also examined concerning his faith, and as he would not
abandon it, or sacrifice to the gods, the judges sentenced him
to a very unusual death, for this was his sentence, "Let the
scourger, that is, the schoolteacher, be pricked, cut, and
stabbed to death by his own scholars, with styles, awls, pens,
penknives, and other sharp instruments such as children make
use of in school."</p>

<p>Thereupon Cassian was stripped naked; his hands were tied
behind his back, and he was thus delivered unto his scholars,
to be maltreated by them in the aforesaid manner. Some of these
then stoned him, some beat him with school-boards and
wax-tablets, others stabbed him with styles, pens, penknives,
and other sharp school utensils, till, after unspeakable
torments, death ensued, and he having commended his soul unto
God was thus released from this vale of sorrows. Compare A.
<i>Mell., lst book, fol. 104, col. 3, 4, with J. Gys., fol. 24,
col. 1, ex Prudent., in Hymno; Steph. Hym., 9. Petr. de Nat.,
lib. 7.</i></p>

<h2>EULALIA, A CHRISTIAN MAIDEN, BURNED WITH LAMPS AND TORCHES, AND SUFFOCATED THEREBY, FOR THE FAITH IN JESUS CHRIST, AT EMERITA IN LUSITANIA, A. D. <i>302</i></h2> 

<p>At this time there was a Christian maiden, called Eulalia,
not more than twelve or thirteen years old, who was filled with
such a desire and ardor of the spirit, to die for the name of
Christ, that her parents had to take her out of the city of
Merida, to some distant country seat, and closely confine her
there. But this place could not extinguish the fire of her
spirit, or long confine her body; for, having escaped on a
certain night, she</p>

</div><div id="178"> <br />
 

<p>went very early the following day before the tribunal, and
with a loud voice said to the judge and the whole
magistracy, "Are you not ashamed to cast your own souls and
those of others at once into eternal perdition by denying the
only true God, the Father of us all, and the Creator of all
things? O ye wretched men! do you seek the Christians, that you
may put them to death? Behold, here am I, an adversary of your
satanical sacrifices. I confess with heart and mouth God alone;
but Isis, Apollo, and Venus are vain idols."</p>

<p>The judge before whose tribunal Eulalia spoke thus boldly,
was filled with rage, and called the executioner, commanding
him to take her away speedily, strip her, and inflict various
punishments on her; so that she, said he, may feel the gods of
our fathers, through the punishment, and may learn that it will
be hard for her, to despise the command of our Prince (that is,
of Maximian).</p>

<p>But before he allowed matters to proceed so far, he
addressed her with these soft words-, "How gladly would I spare
thee! O that thou mightest renounce before thy death thy
perverse views of the Christian religion? Reflect once, what
great joy awaits thee, which thou mayest expect in the
honorable state of matrimony. Behold, all thy friends weep for
thee, and thy sorrow-striken, well-born kindred sigh aver thee,
that thou art to die in the tender bloom of thy young life.
See, the servants stand ready to torture thee to death with all
sorts of torments; for thou shaft either be beheaded with the
sword, or torn by the wild beasts, or singed with torches,
which will cause thee to howl and wail, because thou wilt not
be able to endure the pain; or, lastly be burned with fire.
Thou canst escape all these tortures with little trouble, if
thou wilt only take a few grains of salt and incense on the
tips of thy fingers, and sacrifice it. Daughter, consent to
this, and thou shaft thereby escape all these severe
punishments."</p>

<p>This faithful martyr did not think it worth the trouble to
reply either to the entreating or the threatening words of the
judge, but, to say it briefly, pushed far away from her and
upset* the images, the altar, censor, sacrificial book,
etc.</p>

<p>Instantly two executioners came forward, who tore her tender
limbs, and with cutting hooks or claws cut open her sides to
the very ribs.</p>

<br /><cite>* A certain author speaks of her having spit into
the face of the tyrant; which is to be understood of the image or
idol.</cite> 

</div><div id="179"> 

<p>Eulalia, counting and recounting the gashes on her body,
said, "Behold, Lord Jesus Christ! Thy name is being written on
my body; what great delight it affords me to read these
letters, because they are signs of Thy victory! Behold, my
purple blood confesses Thy holy name."</p>

<p>This she spoke with an undaunted and happy countenance,
evincing not the least sign of distress, though the blood
flowed like a fountain from her body. After she had been
pierced through to her ribs with pincers, they applied burning
lamps and torches to the wounds in her sides, and to her
abdomen. Finally the hair of her head was ignited by flames,
and taking it in her mouth, she was suffocated by it. This was
the end of this heroine; young in years, but old in Christ, who
loved the doctrine of her Saviour more than her own life. <i>A.
Mell., 1st book, fol. 105,</i> col. 4, <i>and fol. 106,</i>
col. 1, 2, compared with 1. Gys., fol. 23, col. 3, <i>ex
Prudent. Steph. Hym.</i> 3.</p>

<p>This happened in Lusitania, at Emerita, now called Merida
or Medina del Rio Sacco, in the uttermost or lowest part of
Spain, under the Emperor Maximian and the Proconsul Dacian, as
may clearly be seen in ancient writers, and also in the
afore-mentioned authors.</p>

<h2>EUCRATIS, A VIRTUOUS MAIDEN, DIED IN PRISON, AT CAESAR AUGUSTA, AFTER RECEIVING MANY STRIPES AND WOUNDS, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS, HER SAVIOUR, A. D. 302</h2> 

<p>After the death of Eulalia an account is given (from
Prudentius) of another Christian maiden, called Eucratis, who
by her steadfastness in suffering, and the violence with which
she took the kingdom of heaven, put to shame the spirit of this
world, at Caesar Augusta. The ancients tell us in what manner
this heroine of Jesus Christ was martyred, namely, that she was
not only tormented on her sides with rods and other iron
instruments, but that her breasts were cut off, so that her
liver could be seen; hence, having been put back into prison,
she very miserably died (yet with a glad hope), in consequence
of the putrefaction of: the wounds, which she had received for
the name of Jesus Christ. See <i>Mell. as</i> cited above, from
<i>Steph. Hym.</i> 4. Flos. <i>Sanct. His(. Mart. Rom., 16
April.</i></p>

 
 <h1>THE SECOND YEAR OF THIS PERSECUTION BEGAN A. D. 303</h1>

<p>The persecution did not cease, though it had already risen
to a very high degree. But it may have pleased God to bring His
people through much tribulation into His kingdom. Acts 14:22,
23.</p>

<h2>EUPLIUS, A PIOUS CHRISTIAN, BEHEADED IN THE CITY OF CATANA IN SICILY, FOR. THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS.CHRIST, A. D. 303</h2> 

<p>On the 12th of August, A. D. 303, a certain pious Christian,
called Euplius, was surprised by the inquisitors of the Romans,
in the city of. Catana in Sicily, as he was engaged in reading
the Gospel, and instructing other Christians. They apprehended
him and brought him near the tribunal, in which sat the clerk
of the criminal court and the judge.</p>

<p>Meanwhile Euplius cried aloud, "I am a Christian, and wish to
die for the name of Christ."</p>

<p>Calvisianus, the Proconsul, hearing this, said, "Bring him in
here, who cried thus."</p>

<p>When Euplius had entered the tribunal, carrying with him the
Gospel books, one of the Proconsul's friends said: "It is
not right for him to carry such papers with him contrary to the
prohibition of the Emperors."</p>

<p>The Proconsul asked Euplius, whence he had these writings?
Whether he brought them from his house?</p>

<p>Euplius answered, "I have no house. My Lord Jesus Christ knows that I have no house."</p>

<p>Then the Proconsul commanded him with a loud voice, to read
something out of the writings.</p>

<p>Euplius, having opened the book, read these words, "Blessed
are they which are persecuted for righteousness' sake: for
theirs is the kingdom of heaven." Also, "Whosover will come
after me, let him deny himself, etc.</p>

<p>When he had read these and like passages, the Proconsul
said., "What does all this mean?"</p>

<p>Euplius replied, "This is the law of my Lord, of Jesus
Christ, the Son of the living God."</p>

<p>The 'Proconsul, having heard this confession of Christ,
said, "Let him be delivered unto the executioners, put to the
rack, and thus examined."</p>

<p>He was then very grievously, yea, inhumanly tormented, and
commanded to deliver up the Scriptures he had with him, and to
have them burned to the dishonor of Jesus Christ. All of this
he steadfastly refused to do; moreover, he openly invoked the
name of Jesus Christ, because he had been found worthy to
suffer for His name's sake.</p>

<p>Thereupon he was again led to the rack and dreadfully
tormented in the same manner as before. But he suffered it
patiently, and called upon the Lord, saying, "I thank Thee, O
Christ! help me, O Christ! for Thy sake I suffer all this, O
Christ I"</p>

<p>In short, the Proconsul, still more enraged by this, went
into the tribunal, and gave the sentence of. death to the clerk
of the criminal court, that he might write it out against this
good man. Then, coming out again from the tribunal, and
bringing with him the tablet containing the death sentence, he
read the latter aloud, as follows, "I command that Euplius, the
Christian, be slain with the sword, because he despises the
gods of the Emperors,</p>

</div><div id="180"> 

<p>blasphemes the other gods, and does not repent." He further
said, "Lead him away."</p>

<p>This sentence having been read, the Gospel book which he had
with him when he was apprehended, was forthwith suspended to
his neck, and the crier went before him, crying thus, "Euplius,
the enemy of the gods and the Emperors, is led to death."
Euplius went joyfully to the place where he was to be put to
death, continually thanking Christ for His grace. Having
arrived at the place of execution, he with great reverence
bowed his knees, and prayed to the Lord his God. As soon as he
had finished, he offered his neck to the sword, and poured out
his blood as a drink offering unto the Lord. His dead body was
afterwards removed by the Christians and buried. This happened
at Catana, in Sicily, A. D. 303, after the twelfth day of the
month of August had passed. <i>Arta M. S. Proconsular. Baron.,
edit. in Annal 1, 2, A. D.</i> 303. <i>Alia per
Metaphrastem,</i> compared with <i>A. Mell., 1st book, fol.
117, col. 2-4.</i></p>

<h2>PANCRATIUS, A YOUTH OF FOURTEEN YEARS, BEHEADED FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, WITHOUT THE CITY OF ROME, A. D. 303</h2> 

<p>There was at that time a Christian youth of fourteen years,
called Pancratius, who, when he was brought before the Emperor
Diocletian found such special favor in the eyes of the latter,
that he promised to adopt him as his son, if he would abandon
Christ, and show honor to the gods of the Romans. But this
youth, who was old in the knowledge and love of his Saviour,
showed such steadfastness in defending his faith and despising
the gods, that the Emperor, filled with rage, commanded that he
should be decapitated, on the Aurelian way, just out of the
city of Rome. Thus this youth loved the honor of his Saviour
more than his own life, and hence he is justly reckoned among
the number of the pious martyrs. <i>Aeta per Sicrium, bona fide
edita, secundum Mellinum, in Tract super, fol.</i> 139, <i>col.
4.</i></p>

<h2>JUSTUS, A PIOUS AND GOD-FEARING YOUTH OF AUXERRE, IN BURGUNDY, DECAPITATED FOR THE FAITH IN JESUS CHRIST, NEAR LUPERAM, A. D. 303</h2> 

<p>When the soldiers of the Emperor Diocletian were engaged in
apprehending the Christians, a certain father, called Mattheus,
and his two sons, Justinian and Justus, were journeying toward
Auxerre, in Burgundy, their place of residence. But having been
denounced, in the meantime, by some evil informers, they were
pursued by the aforesaid soldiers and four horsemen sent by the
Emperor's Proconsul. The younger son, Justus, perceiving this,
communicated it to his father and his brother, who hid
themselves in a cave, but Justus kept watch without. When he
saw the horsemen, he went to meet them. Being asked by them,
who he was, and where his companions were, he replied, "I am
called Justus, and I freely confess that I am also a Christian;
but since I regard you as persecutors of the Christians, it is
not lawful for me to betray my companions."</p>

<p>When they drew their swords, and threatened him with them,
he answered, "Truly, I shall consider myself happy, if I may be
permitted to suffer all manner of punishment, nay, death
itself, for the name of Christ; for I am ready to lose my soul
in this world that I may keep it unto life eternal."</p>

<p>Thereupon one of the soldiers drew his sword, and struck off
his head. His father and his brother buried his dead body at
Luperam, which place was near by. This occurred A. D. 303.
<i>Abr. Mell., ex Acta per Surimn edita, ut apparet ex Bede,
Acris Rit. Micis de Sumpta.</i></p>

<h2>FELIX, BISHOP OF THE CHURCH AT THIBARIS, IN AFRICA, PUT TO DEATH WITH THE SWORD, IN THAT CITY, FOR DEFENDING THE EVANGELICAL TRUTH, A. D. 303</h2> 

<p>When Constantinus Chlorus and Galerius Maximianus were
Caesars for the fourth time, the E;perors Diocletian and
Maximian issued an edict to the whole world, which was
transmitted to the a;thorities of all the colonies or free
cities of the Romans, and read to this effect: that they should
demand the divine books and laws of the Chns at the hands of
their bishops and teachers. A copy of this edict, among others,
was posted up in the city of Thibaris, in Africa, on the fifth
day of the month of June.</p>

<p>Now when it came to pass that the fiscal Procurator of that
place demanded of Felix the divine and Christian books, in
order to burn them, Felix answered, "It were better, that I
should be burned, than the divine Scriptures, because we must
obey God rather than men."</p>

<p>The Procurator said, "Nevertheless, the command of the
Emperors must have the precedence to thy word."</p>

<p>Felix replied, "God's command comes before the commands of
men."</p>

<p>The Procurator said, "Consider well, what thou doest."</p>

<p>NOTE.-Here we might produce the whole of the court
proceedings as believed to have been recorded by the clerk of
the criminal court; but in order to avoid prolixity, we shall
present to the kind reader, word for word, only the last and
principal part of those proceedings.</p>

<p>Having arrived there, the Proconsul or General commanded
them to loose Felix, and ask him, saying, "O Felix, why wilt
thou not deliver up the books of the Lord thy God? Or perhaps,
thou dost not have any?"</p>

<p>Felix answered, "Indeed, I have them, but I do not wish to
give them to you."</p>

<p>The Proconsul said, "Put Felix to death with the sword."</p>

<p>When Felix had received the sentence of death,</p>

</div><div id="181"> 

<p>he said with a loud voice, "I thank Thee, O Lord, that Thou
hast redeemed me!" He was immediately led to the place where he
was to die; at which time the moon was changed as into blood.
.This happened on the 30th of August.</p>

<p>Having arrived at the place of execution, Felix lifted up
his eyes toward heaven, and said with a loud voice, "O Lord God,
I thank Thee, that I have lived to be fifty-six years old. I
have kept myself pure; have kept the Gospels or evangelical
books; and have preached the faith and truth- in their purity.
O Lord God of heaven and earth, Jesus Christ I I bow my neck to
the sword, as do offering unto Thee, who abidest in eternity,
with whom there is and abideth glory and majesty forever and
ever, Amen."</p>

<p>Thus far the account of the martyrdom of Felix has been
translated word for word from the <i>Acta Proconsularia,</i>
that is, the records of the proceedings which were approved by
the heathen judges and proconsuls. Compare <i>Abr. Mell., 1st
book, fol.</i> 117, col. 1, 2, with <i>Act. Proconsul. extant
sur tom 5, Octob.</i> 24.</p>

<h2>PRIMUS AND FELICIAN, TWO BROTHERS, AFTER MANY TORMENTS, THROWN BEFORE LIONS AND BEARS, TO BE TORN BY THEM, BUT FINALLY BEHEADED, AT NUMENTA, IN ITALY, A. D. .303</h2> 

<p>In the year 303 two brothers, Primus and Felician, were
brought prisoners before the criminal judge of the city of
Numenta, in Italy. He first examined Felician, and asked him,
whether he would rather sacrifice to the gods, and live in
honors, and see good days, or be tortured unto death with all
manner of torments?</p>

<p>Felician answered, "How canst thou speak to me of pleasant
days? I am now eighty years old, and have been enlightened with
the saving knowledge of Christ for about thirty years; yea,
I,am still finding the greatest joy of my heart in His service.
And thou wouldst persuade me to forsake my Saviour, and accept
instead of Him the vain lusts of this world! Far -be it from
me; for I have resolved to cleave to Christ, my Lord and my
God, to the very last breath of my life."</p>

<p>Thereupon this good old man was put in prison, and his
brother Primus brought forth, whom the judge endeavored to
persuade that Felician, his dear old brother, had apostatized.
But Primus was confident that the contrary was true; therefore
he said that it was a lie. Upon this he was beaten with sticks,
and burned on his loins with lamps. But he sang with the
prophet David, "O Lord, Thou hast proved us with fire, as silver
is tried."</p>

<p>Then both were tormented, in different ways. Molten lead was
poured down Primus' throat, while Felician was beaten with
leaded scourges, nailed with his hands and feet to a stake, and
inhumanly tortured. Both were cast before the lions and bears;
but as these would not harm them the judge caused the martyrs
to be beheaded and their dead bodies laid on the ground for the
dogs and the birds of the air. However, they were buried by the
Christians. <i>Acta per eundem. Also, A. Mell., 1st book,
fol.</i> 114, col. 2.</p>

<h2>THE THIRD YEAR OF THE PERSECUTION, COMMENCED A. D. 304</h2> 

<p>In the third year of the persecution, the obdurate heart of
the bloodthirsty Emperor Diocletian had not yet softened,
seeing he and his associate Maximian steadily went on putting
to death the poor Christian believers, as appears from the
death of the following persons.</p>

<h2>APPHIAN, A GOD-FEARING YOUTH, DROWNED IN THE SEA AT CAESAREA, IN PALESTINE, BECAUSE HE DEFENDED THE HONOR OF JESUS CHRIST, AND REPROVED IDOLATRY, A. D. 304</h2> 

<p>When the third year of the afore-mentioned persecution had
begun; the second oppression of the Christians arose in
Palestine, through letters which had been sent in the Emperor's
name to Urbanus, the Proconsul; whereby the magistrates of
every city were commanded: to exert the utmost diligence, that
all Christians, men and women, old and young, would sacrifice
to the gods; and that the criers should call together in the
city of Caesarea, men, women, and children, to assemble in the
temples of the idols; and also that the chief men of every
quarter of the city should read off from their lists, the name
of every citizen, so as to make it impossible for any one to
-conceal himself. This caused great misery and distress
throughout the whole city.</p>

<p>When it came to pass, on the first day of the goddess
Hecate, that the Proconsul of Palestine was engaged in offering
his sacrifice, Apphian, who was not yet twenty years old, went
undauntedly to the Proconsul, and reproved him for his wicked
idolatry, admonishing him to desist from it. Instantly the
youth was frightfully torn as by wild beasts by the bodygards
of the Proconsul, suffering stripes without number from them,
which he endured with great steadfastness. Thereupon he was
imprisoned for awhile, but was then brought forth again, and
dreadfully tormented. He was beaten so inhumanly in his face
and on his neck, that owing to the wounds and the swelling of
his face he was so disfigured, that those who formerly knew him
well, now no longer recognized him. At the command of the
Proconsul they also took linen cloths, which they had saturated
with oil, wound them around his bare legs, and then set them on
fire, so that the flames leaped up high, consuming not only the
flesh off the bones, but even melting the marrow within them,
causing it to trickle down; which must have caused a pain
beyond all comparison. But in all this he remained steadfast.
Three days after this he was again brought before</p>

</div><div id="182"> 

<p>the judge, and received sentence of death, namely, that he
should be drowned in the sea; which sentence was executed on
the second of April, A. D. 304. Compare <i>Abr. Mell., 1st
book, fol. 123, col. 1, 2,</i> with <i>Eus., lib. 8, cap.</i>
14.</p>

<h2>ULPIAN, A PIOUS YOUNG MAN, CAST INTO THE SEA, AND DROWNED, NEAR THE CITY OF TYRE, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, A. D. 304</h2> 

<p>About that time, almost in those very days, another youth,
named Ulpian, was brought forth in the city of Tyre, who, after
having been long and very severely tormented, was finally
sentenced to an unusual death, for the testimony of Jesus
Christ, namely: to be wrapped stark naked, together with a dog
and an adder, in the fresh hide of an ox or cow and thus thrown
into the sea. This sentence was executed near the city of
Tyre.; but the sea shall give up its dead, and then shall this
pious witness of Jesus Christ, and his fellow brethren be
rewarded and crowned by the Lord with the crown of immortality.
<i>Vide supra Mellin., ex Euseb. Hist., lib. 8, cap.
15.</i></p>

<h2>AEDESIUS, BROTHER OF THE AFOREMENTIONED APPHIAN, FIRST BANISHED TO THE MINES OF PALESTINE, AND AFTERWARDS DROWNED IN THE SEA, AT ALEXANDRIA, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF THE LORD, A. D. 304</h2> 

<p>Shortly after the death of the martyrs Apphian and Ulpian,
the enemies of the divine and .Christian truth laid their hands
on Aedesius, the brother of Apphian. After making many
excellent confessions for the name of the Lord, he was
sentenced to be sent as a slave to the mines of Palestine.</p>

<p>Finally, when he happened to see, in the city of Alexandria,
how the Proconsul pronounced sentence of death upon the
Christians, and sometimes caused manifold indignities to be
heaped upon aged persons, together with other wickednesses
practiced by him, he boldly went into the court to the judge,
and openly eproved him on account of the unjust and wicked
sentences he pronounced upon the innocent Christians. For this
he was most unmercifully tormented, which pains he meekly and
not less steadfastly endured. He was then thrown into the sea,
and drowned, even as had been done with his brother. <i>See the
above cited books.</i></p>

<h2>AGATHOPUS, A DEACON, AND THEODULUS, A LECTOR, OF THE THESSALONIAN CHURCH, DROWNED NEAR THESSALONICA, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, A. D. 304</h2> 

<p>In that same year, two pious Christians of Thessalonica,
Agathopus, a deacon, and Theodulus, a lector, of the
Thessalonian church, were apprehended for the testimony of
Jesus Christ, and brought before Faustin, the Governor of the
city. He first took up Theodulus, the younger, to torment him,
causing him to be stripped and bound. While Theodulus was being
tormented, the crier called to him, "Sacrifice, and thou shalt
be released." Theodulus answered, "You may strip my body, but
you shall never turn my heart and mind from the faith in
God."</p>

<p>As they both went to hear their sentence of death, their
friends cried and wailed most bitterly, so that the sound of it
seemed to ascend to heaven; but Theodulus said to them, with a
happy countenance, "If you weep for our friendship's sake, I tell you, that you
ought rather to rejoice, because we are tried in so honorable a
conflict; but if you envy us this happiness, and are sad
because you are not partakers of it, the door of blessedness
stands open for you, too, and the proclamation of faith calls:
Come ye all to Christ; but it gives the crown of eternal life
only to those who are drawn back neither by riches, nor by
voluptuousness, nor by the honor of this world."</p>

<p>Finally, the judge gave sentence, that their hands should be
tied behind their backs, and heavy stones be fastened to their
necks, and that they should thus be drowned; which they
steadfastly endured,. and are therefore reckoned among the
number of the holy martyrs. <i>A. M. fol.</i> 140, col. 1,
<i>ex Act. per Metaph.</i></p>

<h2>JULITTA OF ICONIA, AN HONORABLE WIDOW, AFTER MUCH FLEEING FINALLY BEHEADED FOR THE NAME OF THE LORD, AT TARSUS, IN CILICIA, A. D. 304</h2> 

<p>When Diocletian's persecution was at its highest, a certain
widow of Iconia tried to flee from it; wherefore she went with
her child, which was three ,ears old, from Lyconia to Seleucia,
and from there to Tarsus, in Cilicia. But she could not remain
concealed there from the heat of the persecution; for
Alexander, the Proconsul who had jurisdiction there,
apprehended her. After many vain efforts to persuade her to
renounce the Christian faith, lie caused her to be scourged
with tough cowhides.</p>

<p>In the meantime he endeavored to quiet the frightened child,
called Quiricus, by many pleasant and coaxing words; but the
child resisted with hands and feet, refusing to be caressed by
the tyrant, and finally ran to his mother. However, the tyrant
caught him up again; but this did not turn out very peacefully
or pleasantly, for the child scratched his face, and kicked his
sides, so that the pain quite enraged him. He therefore took
the child by his legs and pitched him head foremost down the
stone stairs. The mother, seeing this, thus addressed the
tyrant, "Thou needest not think that I am so timid as to be
conquered by thy cruelties; for the tearing of my body shall
not intimidate me, nor the racking of my members move my
spirit; neither shall the threats of the fire, nor death itself
be able to separate me from the love of Christ.</p>

</div><div id="183"> 

<p>The greater the torments are with which you threaten me, the
more acceptable they are to me; for I hope thereby the sooner
to come to my dear son, and to receive with him the crown of
righteousness at the hand of Christ."</p>

<p>Upon this confession, the Proconsul had her suspended to the
torture-stake, her flesh torn with iron combs, melted pitch
poured over her naked body and fresh wounds, and finally caused
her to be beheaded. Acta <i>Fidelia, per Metaphrastem,</i>
compared with A. <i>Mell., 1st book, fol. 140, col.</i> 1,
2.</p>

<h2>FORTY YOUTHS, WHO CONFESSED CHRIST THEIR SAVIOUR, THROWN INTO A COLD POOL, AND BURNED ALIVE THE FOLLOWING DAY, AT ANTIOCH, A. D. 304</h2> 

<p>When the East as well as the West was exceedingly disturbed
on account of the violence of the persecution, there manifested
themselves in the East, namely at Antioch, forty pious youths,
as valiant champions of Jesus Christ, inasmuch as they openly
and boldly confessed the Son of God, Jesus Christ, as their
Saviour. Thereupon, the Governor of that place, after they had
been apprehended, strenuously exerted himself to move them from
the faith; but when all his efforts proved unsuccessful, he had
them stripped naked, in the coldest part of the winter, and
cast into a very cold pool. But as they were still alive the
next day, he caused them to be burned to powder.</p>

<p>One of them, who in consideration of his extreme
youthfulness had, through compassion, been restored to his
mother, was placed by the latter with her own hands upon the
wagon in which the others lay, and exhorted, to finish this
blessed course with his fellow brethren. This happened in the
third year of the persecution, A. D. 304. Joh. Gys., fol. 23,
col. 3, <i>ex Bas. de 40 Martyr.</i></p>

<h2>FOURTH YEAR OF THE PERSECUTION, COMMENCED A. D. 305</h2> 

<p>Galerius Maximian, continuing in the persecution which had
been begun, and carried into execution, with great bitterness,
by Diocletian and Maximian, exercised much cruelty, through
Peucetius, Quintinian, Theotecnus, and other Proconsuls,
against the poor Christians; burning them alive; throwing them
before wild beasts, to be torn by them; nailing them to
crosses; drowning multitudes of them in the sea; starving them
to death in the prisons; beheading them; cutting off their
hands and feet, and then giving them their life; but when they
would make use of the favor granted them, spoiling them of
all:their goods, and driving them away into misery.</p>

<p>Touching those who were slain there, the following, among
others, are mentioned by name.</p>

<h2>SYLVANUS, JANUARIUS, SOSIUS, PROCULUS, PELAGIA, THEONAS, CYRENIA, AND JULIANA, ALL OF WHOM LAID DOWN THEIR LIVES FOR THE EVANGELICAL TRUTH, A. D. 305</h2> 

<p>Sylvanus, Bishop of the church of Emissa, a city of Apamea,
in Syria, was, with many others, thrown before the wild beasts,
to be devoured by them.</p>

<p>Januarius, Bishop of the church of Beneventum; Sosius, a.
deacon of the church of Misenum; Proculus, deacon, at Pussolis,
and others, were beheaded together.</p>

<p>Pelagia was suffocated in a red-hot ox.</p>

<p>Theonas, with his companions, Cyrenia and Juliana, were
deprived of life by other methods. Joh. <i>Gys., about the
death of</i> Januarius <i>and Sosius: Abr. Mell., fol. 141, ex
Act. per Johdnnem Januarii Diaconum conscripta per surium
edita.</i></p>

<h2>THE FIFTH YEAR OF THE PERSECUTION, COMMENCED A. D. 306)</h2> 

<p>In this year the persecution was not so severe as in some of
the preceding ones; wherefore there were not many martyrs at
this time. However, the ancients have recorded a few, whom we
shall presently mention.</p>

<h2>THEODOSIA, A GOD-FEARING MAIDEN OF THE CITY OF TYRE, WHO CAME TO COMFORT THE BOUND MARTYRS, DROWNED IN THE SEA AT CAESAREA, A. D. 306)</h2> 

<p>When the fifth year of the tenth persecution had come, on
the second day of the month of April, the Sunday of the
resurrection of our Saviour, Theodosia, a God-fearing maiden of
the city of Tyre, about eighteen years old, came to some bound
martyrs at Caesarea, as they were standing before the tribunal,
to receive their sentence of death. Her reason in doing so was
affectionately to greet them, and to comfort them in their
extremity.</p>

<p>Thereupon she was instantly seized by the soldiers, and
brought before the Proconsul, who forthwith caused her to be
maltreated as though he had been bereft of reason; for he did
not have her tortured with all manner of dreadful torments, on
her sides only, as was generally the custom, but he also caused
her breasts to be torn open to the very bones, and then cut
off. All this she suffered steadfastly and with a happy
countenance; but when by reason of the intensity of the pain
she could scarcely draw her breath any longer, so that it
seemed that she would soon cease to live, the Proconsul had her
thrown into the sea; and thus this faithful heroine of Jesus
Christ was numbered among her slain fellow brethren and
sisters. See A. <i>Mell., 1st book, fol. 124, col. 2, 3, from
Euseb., lib. 8. Also, J. Gys. on the name Theodosia.</i></p>

</div><div id="184"> 

<h2>PAMPHILIUS, AN ELDER OF THE CHURCH AT CXS AREA IN PALESTINE, MOST MISERABLY MARTYRED THERE, FOR THE NAME OF JESUS CHRIST, A. D. 306</h2> 

<p>This Pamphilius was an elder of the church at Caesarea, and
a very eloquent, learned and godly man. It is stated of him
that after much suffering and tribulation he underwent the
conflict of martyrdom, for the name of Christ, and was thus
numbered among the heroes of the bloody banner of Jesus Christ.
It appears that he was a special friend of Eusebius
Parnphilius, so that some are of the opinion, that the latter
took his surname Pamphilius from him. This much is certain,
that he wrote the following concerning him, as ancient authors
have informed us, "Among those who were variously afflicted and
vexed, and kept in chains and bonds at Caesarea, by Urban, the
Proconsul of Palestine, was also Pamphilius, my most faithful
friend, who probably was the chiefest martyr of our time, and
the most celebrated in all manner of virtue and godliness." A.
Mill., <i>1st book, fol.</i> 124, col. 3, 4, from
<i>Eusebius</i> and <i>Jerome,</i> compare with <i>J. Gys.,
fol.</i> 26, col. 4.</p>

<h2>THE SIXTH YEAR OF THE PERSECUTION, COMMENCED A. D. 307</h2> 

<p>From among those who were put to death in the sixth year of
Diocletian's persecution, we have selected the following.</p>

<h2>ENNATHAS, A CHRISTIAN MAIDEN FROM THE CITY OF SCYTHOPOLIS, BURNED ALIVE IN PALESTINE, FOR THE, CONFESSION OF THE CHRISTIAN FAITH, A. D. 307</h2> 

<p>When some Christians, in their zeal . for the truth, had
reproved Firmilian, the Proconsul of Palestine, . for his great
idolatry, and were: put to death on this account, on the
thirteenth of November, A. D. 307, a certain young maiden,
named Ennathas, a native of the city of Scythopolis, came there
on:the same day, not of her own accord, however, but through
compulsion, and, together with the others, boldly laid down her
life for the name of Jesus Christ. She was at first most
unmercifully treated, nay, in a manner too shameful and
horrible for description. Finally, when she remained steadfast
nevertheless, in the confession of her faith, the judge
pronounced sentence of death upon her, namely, that she should
be burnt alive; and thus this pious martyr pressed through the
strait gate, leaving her flesh on the posts; which the Lord
shall afterwards crown and reward with glory and majesty. See
A. <i>Mell., 1st book, fol.</i> 125, col. 4, <i>from Euseb., J.
Gys., fol.</i> 26, col, 4.</p>

<h2>CATHARINA, AN HONORABLE MAIDEN OF ALEXANDRIA, BEHEADED AFTER MANY TORMENTS, FOR THE FAITH IN JESUS CHRIST, A. D. 307</h2> 

<p>It is stated that on the 25th of November of the same year,
Catharina, an honorable maiden of Alexandria, was beheaded, for
the faith in Jesus Christ, after having suffered many torments.
<i>J. Gys.;</i> fol. 26, col. 4.</p>

<h2>THE SEVENTH YEAR OF THE PERSECUTION, COMMENCED A. D. 308</h2> 

<p>It is stated that in the seventh year of the persecution the
following persons were slain for the confession of the
evangelical truth.</p>

<h2>SOME PIOUS CHRISTIANS WHO WENT TO VISIT THEIR CONFINED FELLOW. BRETHREN, APPREHENDED.AT CESAREA, AND BANISHED TO THE MINES; BUT THREE OF THEM, NAMELY, ARES, PROMUS, AND ELIAS, PUT TO DEATH AT ASKALON, A. D. 308</h2> 

<p>About the beginning of the year 308, some Godfearing
Christians left Egypt, with the intention of journeying to
Cilicia, to supply those, who for the confession of the faith
had been banished to the mines there, with some needful things
in their misery and poverty. They were apprehended at Caesarea
by the guard at the gate of the city. Some of them were sent
into misery and slavery through the same sentence, which
consisted of this, that the right eye was to be put out, and
the left kneepan cut away, and the wound seared; and thus with
one eye and one leg they were compelled to labor in this hard
slavery.</p>

<p>Three of their number were apprehended at Askalon, in
Palestine, and were tormented in various ways, because they
steadfastly confessed their faith. One of them, named Ares, was
burnt alive; the other two, Promus and Elias, were beheaded,
and thus departed this life in a godly manner. A. <i>Melt., 1st
book, fol.</i> 126, col. 1, from <i>Euseb.</i></p>

<h2>PETER APSELAMUS, A YOUNG MAN, BURNED ALIVE AT CAESAREA FOR THE NAME OF JESUS CHRIST, A. D. 308</h2> 

<p>Shortly afterwards (on the 11th of January), a pious man
called Peter, and surnamed Apselamus, was apprehended. He was a
native of Amea., a village in the neighborhood of
Elentheropolis. For some time he led the life of a recluse,
having retired into solitude to give himself over to divine
meditations.</p>

<p>Though the judge and the other members of the tribunal had
begged him again and again, to have compassion upon himself and
his youth (for he was yet in the bloom of life), he disregarded
it all, putting his entire confidence in the living and</p>

</div><div id="185"> 

<p>true God, whom he loved more than all this world contains,
yea, than his own life. Finally he suffered his confidence in
Christ, his Saviour, to be tried, as precious gold, by fire,
and was burned alive at Caesarea, for the. name of Jesus
Christ, having commended his soul into the hands of God.
<i>Idem, Ibidem, ex Euseb., lib. 8.</i></p>

<h2>BIBLIS, AQUILINA, AND FORTUNATA, THREE GOD FEARING CHRISTIAN WOMEN, PUT TO DEATH FOR THE DIVINE TRUTH, IN PALESTINE, A. D. 308</h2> 

<p>Among various other martyrs who suffered for the testimony
of Jesus Christ in the seventh year of Diocletian's
persecution, we have noticed that there were also several
honorable Christian women who, from love to their Saviour, did
not hesitate to give their lives for the truth. They were
called Biblis, Aquilina, a girl of twelve years, and Fortunata,
a maiden of Caesarea; who together laid down their lives .for
the truth, in Palestine. 1. <i>Gys., fol.</i> 26, cot. 3,
<i>compared with A. M., fol.</i> 131, cot. 3, ex <i>Mart. Rom.
Memol. Grec. MetaQhrast.</i> 13 Junii.</p>

<h2>THE EIGHTH YEAR OF THE PERSECUTION, COMMENCED A. D. 309</h2> 

<p>It is related that at this time the modes of torture and of
putting to death were various. Some were beheaded with the axe,
as was mostly done with the martyrs in Arabia. Some had their
legs broken on the wheel, as was the case with those who
confessed the name of Christ in Cappadocia. Others were hung up
by their heels, with the head close to the ground, and then
suffocated by a small fire, as was the case in Mesopotamia.
Some had their noses, ears, hands, feet, and other members, cut
off, as was done to those at Alexandria. At Antioch some were
roasted on frying-pans, not unto death, but to intensify the
pain. But the sufferings inflicted upon the poor martyrs in
Pontus are horrible to relate; for some had sharp splints of
reed thrust between the nails and the flesh of their fingers;
others had melted lead poured over their naked bodies; some had
their secret parts singed and seared, in the invention of which
tortures the judges and proconsuls vied with one another, even
as though they wished thereby to manifest their great
ingenuity, and their tyranny against the Christians. See
concerning this, <i>A. Mell., fol. 128,</i> cot. 1, 2.</p>

<h2>TWO SISTERS AT ANTIOCH DROWNED IN THE SEA, BECAUSE THEY WOULD NOT RENOUNCE CHRIST THEIR SAVIOUR, A. D. 309</h2> 

<p>In the eighth year of Diocletian's persecution, that is A.
D. 309, there were at Antioch two sisters, young maidens, of
modest manners and pious life, intelligent and well-informed in
the way of godliness; so that the world was not worthy, to con
ain them any longer. They were apprehended and examined, and,
clinging steadfastly to Christ, cast into the depths of the
sea, and drowned, by the servants of Satan. See the above-named
author, in the same book, fol. 129, cot. 1, from
<i>Euseb.</i></p>

<h2>IRENE AND HER TWO SISTERS, BURNED ALIVE FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, A. D. 309</h2> 

<p>In the records written, through the clerk of the criminal
court, by the Proconsul Dulcetius, concerning some pious
martyrs, there is pronounced, at the close, a certain sentence
of death over three sisters, who steadfastly continued in the
truth of Christ. The last part of the afore-mentioned records
contain, in regard to this, the following words, "And when he
(Dulcetius) had demanded paper, he wrote this sentence of
death.: 'Whereas Irene would not obey the decree of the
Emperors, and sacrifice to the gods, and does still remain a
Christian, therefore I command that she be burned alive, as her
two sisters were.'"</p>

<p>When the criminal judge had pronounced this sentence upon
Irene, the soldiers took her and brought her upon an elevated
place, where her sisters had died; and when they had built a
great fire of wood, they made her climb upon it; and there,
after singing sweet psalms and hymns of praise to the honor of
God, she was consumed by the flames. <i>A. Mell., fol.</i> 130
<i>and</i> 131, <i>cot. 1, ex Act. Tier. Proconsular. aped
Metaph.</i> Also, <i>Actca cognitionis novissime diei.</i></p>

<h2>PETER, NILUS, AND P. MYTHIUS, BURNED IN
EGYPT; FORTY BEHEADED; MARTIONILLA, EUPHRATESIA, SEVEN BROTHERS, AND OTHERS, PUT TO DEATH AT ANTIOCH, A. D. 309</h2> 

<p>It is stated that besides the afore-mentioned martyrs there
were put to death by fire in Egypt, for the name of the Lord,
three pious Christians, named Peter, Nilus, and P. Mythius;
forty others were beheaded; and for the same reason,
Martionilla, Euphratesia, seven brothers, and various others,
also laid down their lives for the truth. J. <i>Gys., fol.</i>
27, cot. 1.</p>

<h2>THE NINTH YEAR OF THE PERSECUTION, COMMENCED A. D. 310</h2> 

<p>The ancients tell us that Maximinus Jovius instituted at
this time a special persecution at Antioch, through the
instrumentality of one Theotecnus; to which end he caused an
image to be erected, in honor of Jupiter Philius (the god of
friendship), by which-whether through Satan or through
jugglery-certain oracles were uttered, to the effect, that God
had commanded that the Christians, as His special enemies,
should be driven out of every country, city, and field, and be
exterminated, the sooner the better. A. <i>Mell., fol. 134,
from Euseb.</i></p>

</div><div id="186"> 

<p>It is easy to judge that this false and bloodthirsty voice,
having fallen as a true oracle into the hearts of the heathen,
caused not a little shedding of blood, oppression, and burning
among the innocent and defenseless lambs of Christ, as we shall
presently in some measure show.</p>

<p>LUCIAN, AN ELDER OF THE CHURCH OF CHRIST AT ANTIOCH, AFTER
HAVING CONFESSED THE FAITH, CAST INTO PRISON, AND PUT TO DEATH THERE, A. D. <i>310</i></p>

<p>Among the many pious witnesses of Jesus Christ, who laid
down their lives for the truth, Lucian, who was an elder of the
church at Antioch, was not one of the least; for it is stated
<i>of</i> him, that he was a very godly, wise, and eloquent
man, well versed in the Scriptures, but above all, that he
boldly sealed all this with his blood and death, to the honor
of God.</p>

<p>The judge asked him as he stood before his judgment seat,
saying: <i>"O</i> Lucian, how does it come that thou, who art
such a wise man, dost follow this sect, for which thou canst
give no reason at all? Or, if thou hast any, let us hear
it."</p>

<p>Having obtained permission to speak, he made a very
excellent and glorious profession of his faith; which would
well reserve a place here, were we not, in order to avoid
prolixity, compelled to omit it. As soon as he had ended his
confession, and the people had in some measure, been drawn over
to his views, the judge commanded them to lock him up again in
prison, and to put him to death there; which, as the ancient
writers relate, was accordingly done. But God shall reveal it
all on the last day, and reward every one according to his
works. Compare with <i>A. M., fol. 135, cot. 1-4, ex Eusebio
and Ruffino, in Hist., Eccles. Hier. Cataal. in
Luciano.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-Some place this Lucian in the tenth year of the
persecution, namely, in A. D. <i>311.</i></p>

<h2>PETER, FAUSTUS, DIDIUS, AND AMMONIUS, WHO MINISTERED TO THE CHURCH OF JESUS CHRIST AT ALEXANDRIA, PUT TO DEATH FOR THE FAITH IN THE SON OF GOD, A. D. <i>310</i></h2> 

<p>At this time there were persecuted, by virtue of the bloody
decree of Maximian, a number of Godfearing and learned men, who
adhered to Christ by a true confession; of whom we shall
briefly present a few, mentioning also the place and time of
their death. Peter, bishop of the church of Christ at
Alexandria, and Faustus, Didius, and Ammonius, all three
elders, were put to death for the faith in Jesus Christ, on the
28th day of November, A. D. <i>310.</i> There were also several
other bishops in Egypt, who laid down their lives for the same
reason. Compare <i>J. Gys., fol.</i> 27, <i>cot. 1,</i> with
<i>A. Mell., 1st book, fol. 136, cot. 4, from Eusebius,
Epiphanius, Athanasius.</i></p>

<h2>ANYSIA, A YOUNG GIRL OF THESSALONICA, SLAIN IN THE TEMPLE, AT ALEXANDRIA, BECAUSE OF HER CHRISTIAN FAITH, A. D. <i>310</i></h2> 

<p>Anysia, a girl of Thessalonica, born of wealthy Christian
parents, was slain in the temple at Alexandria, because of her
Christian faith, at the time when Maximian had issued a decree
authorizing everyone to kill the Christians wherever they might
be found. <i>J. Gys., fol.</i> 27, cot. 2.</p>

<h2>DEMETRIUS, A CHRISTIAN TEACHER, PUT TO DEATH FOR THE TRUE CHRISTIAN TRUTH, AT ALEXANDRIA, A. D. <i>310</i></h2> 

<p>At the same time and place, also Demetrius, a remarkably
virtuous and zealous teacher, sealed the genuine, divine and
Christian truth with his blood. <i>Idem, Ibidem.</i></p>

<h2>THEODORUS, PHILEMON, AND CYRILLA, PUT TO DEATH FOR THEIR LOVE TO THEIR SAVIOUR, A. D. <i>310</i></h2> 

<p>Besides the preceding ones, we find that there were put to
death, for the name of the Lord, and their love to their
Saviour, Theodorus, a bishop of the church of Christ, Philemon,
and Cyrilla. See the above-mentioned author, in the same book,
fol. 27, <i>cot. 3, ex hinc., lib.</i> 12, cap. <i>149.</i></p>

<h2>THE TENTH OR LAST YEAR OF THIS PERSECUTION, COMMENCED A. D. <i>311</i></h2> 

<p>We shall speak but briefly <i>of</i> the last year of this
persecution, since ancient writers have left us little
information in regard to it. Nevertheless, there were some at
that time, who laid down their lives for the truth; among whom
the following are mentioned.</p>

<h2>EUGENIUS, AUXENTIUS, MAODATIUS, AND MANY OTHERS, AFTER MANY TORMENTS PUT TO DEATH IN VARIOUS WAYS, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, A. D. <i>311</i></h2> 

<p>Eugenius, because he confessed Christ, and had reproved the
wickedness of the heathen, had his tongue cut out, and his arms
and legs broken, and thus departed this life, steadfastly
continuing in the Lord.</p>

<p>Auxentius, a deacon of the Christian church at Auracea, in
Asia, was beheaded for the same reason-for the faith in
Christ.</p>

<p>Maodatius was hung up by his toes, and, having been pierced
with red-hot awls, and burned with torches, was deprived of
life, for the testimony of Jesus.</p>

<p>Besides these, many others were put to death for the faith,
whose name cannot be given; hence we shall content ourselves
with those already mentioned. See J. Gys., fol. 27, <i>cot. 4,
at the foot, and fol.</i> 28, <i>cot. 1.</i></p>

</div><div id="187"> 

<p>In the <i>Introduction to the Martyrs' Mirror, fol.</i> 44
and 45, there are mentioned, besides the ten general
persecutions, which we have described, two others, there called
the eleventh and the twelfth persecutions; of which the former
is said to have begun, A. D. 316, under Lucinius, who, together
with Constantine the Great, reigned in' the east; and the
second, A. D. 362, under Julian the Apostate. But since other
eminent writers do not pronounce these persecutions as general
ones, we shall give no special account of them; however, if any
true martyrs were put to death at that time, We hope to mention
each in his proper place. Under Lucinius, there laid down their
lives for the faith in the Son of God, according to the
testimony of the ancients, the following persons.</p>

<h2>BASILEUS, BISHOP AT PONTUS; AMMON, A DEACON; ABOUT FORTY WOMEN; AND OTHERS, PUT TO DEATH BY FIRE, WATER, AND ICE, A. D. 316</h2> 

<p>When it was thought that the previous persecutions,
especially that under Diocletian and Maximian, should have
quenched the bloodthirstiness of the great, Lucinius, who
occupied the imperial throne in the east, was still not content
therewith. For when the winds of blood, fanned on by Satan,
blew through his head, he caused to be put to death without
mercy, various pious - Christians, namely</p>

<p>Basileus, bishop of the church of Christ at Amasen, in
Pontus; Ammon, a deacon; and about forty women, whom he had
killed, some by fire, and some by water; as well as various
other pious martyrs, whom he had put in the cold ice, thus
causing their death. This happened about the tenth year of the
reign of Lucianius, which agrees with A. D. 316. <i>Introd.,
fol. 44, col. 1, 2.</i></p>

<h2>TWO BROTHERS, DONOTIAN AND ROGATIAN, BEHEADED FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, A. D. 360</h2> 

<p>Thefe were two brothers, Donotian and Rogation, tines of
Italy; one of whom, Donotian, had accepted the true Christian
faith, and been baptized upon it; but the other, Rogatian, had
not yet received baptism, was, however, a neophyte or
catechumen, having been brought to the knowledge of the
Christian truth through the instrurnentality of his brother.
Both were apprehended. Then Rogation wished greatly that he had
been baptized, for he knew that he would have to die; but that
could not be, as there was no opportunity. His brother,
Donotian, therefore prayed to God, that his blood might be
accounted to him for the sacrament of baptism. The next day
both were beheaded, A. D. 360. P. J. <i>Tuasck, Chron., 4th
book, fol.</i> 106, <i>col. 2, front the tract, Grondig Bewijs
van den Heyligen Doop, letter</i> B. Also, <i>Leowlt, in
tract.,</i> <i>lib. 2.</i> These authors must be compared with
each other.</p>

<p>The persecution which took place under Julian, the Apostate,
did not destroy the bodies as much as the souls. For since he
was a very crafty man, and had an eloquent, yet deceitful,
tongue, he did more harm to the church of God by his flattery,
than by tyranny. Nevertheless, several of the true Christians
were martyred under his reign; who would rather through the way
of death enter life eternal, than through the way of temporal
life, by flattery, fall into eternal death and damnation; as
shall presently be shown.</p>

<h2>JOHN AND PAUL, WHO OPPOSED WAR, PUT TO DEATH AS HERETICS, UNDER JULIAN THE APOSTATE, ABOUT A. D. 363</h2> 

<p>There were two special friends, John and Paul, who opposed
war and bloodshed. They were called to war, and urged to engage
in it, but as they would not consent to it, they were
therefore, as well as because of their true Christian
confession, put to death as heretics. Concerning this,
different authors write thus, "John and Paul had to die, because
they would not engage in warfare, but replied to the Apostate:
'We are Christians; it is not lawful for us to engage in war."'
In <i>Grondelijke Verklaringe Danielis, en Johannis
OQenbaringe,</i> printed by <i>Harlem, A. D.</i> 1635,
<i>page</i> 56, from various other authors.</p>

<h2>SOME PIOUS PEOPLE, WHO, IN ACCORDANCE WITH THE DOCTRINE OF CHRIST, REFUSED TO ENGAGE IN WARFARE, VERY CRUELLY PUT TO DEATH BY THE EMPEROR VALENS, A. D. 368</h2> 

<p>After the death of the Emperor Julian, Jovian reigned, and
after the death of the latter, the empire devolved on
Valentinian, who is commonly called Valens. He, too, stained
his hands with the blood of the Christians, yet not so
excessively as some of his predecessors. Nevertheless, he
cannot be excused, seeing he caused some pious people who
observed the doctrine of Christ to be put to a very cruel
death, because they, like the above-mentioned John and Paul,
refused to perform military service. Compare <i>P. J. Twisck,
Chron., 4th book, p. 114,</i> col. 1, with <i>Jan. Crespin,</i>
in his tract, treating of the oppressions, fol. <i>114.</i></p>

<p>We might have adduced more martyrs for this century, but
since that which the ancients have written with respect to
their lives, as well as their faith and religion is doubtful,
we have not deemed it well to proceed further, and shall,
therefore, content ourselves with the true martyrs of whom we
have already given account, and those of whom we hope to give
an account in the following centuries.</p>

</div><div id="188"> 

<br />
<br />

<h1>AN ACCOUNT OF THE HOLY BAPTISM OF THE MARTYRS IN THE FIFTH CENTURY</h1>

<h2>SUMMARY OF BAPTISM IN THE FIFTH CENTURY</h2> 

<p>[We have begun this century with the fifth chapter of the
<i>Centuria Magdeburgenses,</i> the contents of which may be
examined.</p>

<p>Vincent Victor opposes Augustine in the matter of infant
baptism.</p>

<p>Synesius Syrenus, baptized on his faith, by Theophilus.</p>

<p>The fourth council of Carthage establishes, that those who
desire to be baptized, must first be examined, and sounded
relative to their faith.</p>

<p>Sedulius maintains that baptism is a regeneration, and,
moreover, exhorts the young to baptism.</p>

<p>Hilarius of Syracuse asserts the salvation of children that
die unbaptized.</p>

<p>The edict of Honorius and Theodosius against the
Anabaptists.</p>

<p>The council held at Carthage, under Aurelius, against those
who denied original sin, infant baptism, and predestination,
adopts resolutions entirely different from the decree of the
aforementioned fourth council of Carthage.</p>

<p>The edicts of Honorius and Theodosius, in support of said
council.</p>

<p>Maximus teaches the baptism of Christ; Cresconius and his
adherents are pronounced Anabaptists; Cyril of Alexandria
speaks soundly on baptism, and opposes the errors of the
Nastorians and Valentinians.</p>

<p>An account, from Socrates, of many persons at Alexandria,
who hastened to baptism, and were baptized on confession of
their sins; as also, of a sick Jew, who was baptized, and of
one who received baptism after much fasting.</p>

<p>Faustus Regiensis teaches that for baptism the will
(consent) of him that is baptized is necessary.</p>

<p>Evragius makes mention of the baptism of the candidates,
that is, of those who had previously been instructed.</p>

<p>Eucherius maintains that that believer who dies unto sin is
rightly baptized.</p>

<p>Carthaginian women who waited for baptism. In the Council of
Arausica rules are made respecting the baptism of the dumb, the
weak, and catechumens.</p>

<p>Nazarius, the son of Perpetua, a Christian woman, is
baptized after previous instruction.</p>

<p>In the margin mention is made of one Montluck, who adduces
the resolutions of various councils, against the killing of
heretics; as also, the views of Gelasius concerning the holy
Supper.</p>

<p>Salvian of Marseilles, on renouncing Satan, confessing the
faith in God, which it was customary to do at baptism.</p>

<p>Authymius, Sisinnius, and Sociorus, baptized after having
been instructed for seven days. Nolanus mentions the hymns
which it was customary to sing at baptism.</p>

<p>Anabaptism condemned in the fourth council of Rome.</p>

<p>An account of many who separated from the church of Rome,
and, though baptized in their infancy, were baptized upon
faith; as also, what the Pope (or Bishop of Rome) decreed
against this.</p>

<p>Primasius' explanation of I Tim. 6:12; its application to
adult candidates for baptism.</p>

<p>Fulgentius calls baptism a sacrament of faith and
repentance.</p>

<p>In the margin it is stated how vehemently Leo inveighed
against the bishops of Campania, etc., who, according to his
judgment, did not administer baptism aright.</p>

<p>The conclusion is from P. J. Twisck, who says that ancient
church history, other writers excepted, makes no mention of
infant. baptism before A. D. 500. ]</p>

<p>We shall begin the fifth century, concerning baptism, with
the fifth chapter of <i>Jacob Mehrn. History of Baptism,</i>
who commences his account of baptism at that time
thus, "Henceforth we shall not dwell upon quite so many
testimonies taken from the ancient fathers and church
historians, as had necessarily to be the case in the preceding
centuries, in order to prove that during the first four
centuries after the birth of Christ, infant baptism had neither
in the holy Scriptures nor in the authentic books of the
teachers of the,church, a firm foundation; that is, that it had
been ordained by Christ, or that it was an apostolic
institution or tradition. But we shall in future content
ourselves with such testimonies and historical records as best
agree with the truth of the ordinance of the baptism of Jesus
Christ, in order that we may thereby strengthen ourselves in
that truth and in the true faith." <i>Bapt. Hist., page
394.</i></p>

<p>A. D. 401.-About the beginning of this century, opposition
was made against infant baptism and its advocates, among which
advocates in favor of infant baptism Augustine showed himself
none of the least, although he himself had been baptized upon
faith, as has previously been mentioned. He was opposed by a
certain bishop, by the name of Vincent -victor, who,
notwithstanding Augustine's authority, attacked infant baptism,
and; as it appears, withstood it with conclusive arguments from
holy Scripture. But how it finally ended between the two
parties, of this I find no account; mention is made, however,
of the matter itself, by Vicecomes <i>(ib. 2,</i> coup. 1), who
says that Augustine <i>(lib. 3, de anima, et ijus. orig., cap.
14),</i> mentions a bishop called Vincent Victor, who contended
with him about infant baptism. <i>Bdpt. Hist., page
448.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-Vincent taught that in the Supper the figures of the
body and the blood of Christ are administered. Also, that the
bread and the wine continue in their own subsance. <i>Book</i>
of <i>the two</i></p>

</div><div id="189"> 

<p>natures. Also, Samuel Veltius, in G.eslacht-register, page
124.</p>

<p>A. D. 402.-About this time, the very old and excellent
orator Victorinus was baptized on confession of his faith; of
which we find the following in the 2d chapter of the 8th
<i>book</i> of Augustine's Confessions, "O Lord God, who hast
bowed</p>

<p>the heavens under Thy feet; Thou hast come down and touched
the mountains, and smoke has issued from them; how wonderfully
hast Thou long since come into the heart of this
Victorinus!", "He read the holy Scriptures, as Simplician told me, and
most diligently examined and investigated whatever he found
written concerning the Christian religion. He then said to
Simplician, not openly, but secretly, as friend speaks to
friend: 'Know that I am now a. Christian.' Simplician answered:
'I shall not believe it, I shall not count thee among the
Christians, unless I see thee in the Christian church.' (A
little further on:) But suddenly and quite unexpectedly he said
to Simplician, as the latter told me: 'Come, let us go to the
church; I will become a Christian.' Simplician, not knowing
where he was, for joy accompanied him there., "Having been instructed in the principles of the faith,
Victorinus soon after had his name registered that he might be
regenerated through the sacrament of baptism., "Finally, when the hour had come for him to make his
confession (for which confession, at Rome, a customary formula
was learned, and then delivered from an elevated place, in the
presence of all the Christians, by those who prepared
themselves for baptism), the overseers, as Simplician told me,
offered to let him make it privately, as was the custom to
propose to those who it was feared might, through diffidence,
be unable to proceed. But he said that he would rather profess
his salvation in the hearing of all the Christians, than
otherwise., "When he had ascended the elevated place to make his
confession, all who knew him pronounced his name with secret
joy. But who was there that did not know him? For, from the
mouths of all that were assembled, in mutual rejoicing with
him, there arose the glad shout: Victorinus! Victorinus!"</p>

<p>A brief account of this is also given in Bapt. Hist., page
461.</p>

<p>From the above words quoted by us from Augustine, it
certainly appears that at the time when said Victorinus was
baptized, there existed even in Rome, where this baptism took
place, churches which, notwithstanding antichrist began to lift
up his head there in some measure, endeavored with all
diligence to observe the true baptism of Jesus Christ, which is
administered upon faith. For, the statement, that in Rome, that
is, in the church which is. spoken of here, was the custom,
that those who prepared themselves for baptism, learned, for
their confession, a customary formula, and then delivered it
from an elevated place in the presence of all the Christians,
incontrovertibly indicates that there the pure doctrine of
Jesus Christ was still observed in this respect.</p>

<p>Matt. 10:32, "Whosoever therefore," says Christ,"shall
confess me before men, him will I confess also before my Father
which is in heaven." Again, Rom. 10:10, "For with the heart man
believeth unto righteousness; and with the mouth confession is
made unto salvation." This faith and this confession are
necessary to baptism. Acts 8:37; 22:16.</p>

<p>Bapt. Hist., page 459; Vicecom., lib. 3, cap. 24. At the
time of Augustine, that is, at the time of the afore-mentioned
Victorinus, when virtue and Christian simplicity were still
reigning, the examinations of the catechumens were conducted
with much strictness, and great frequency, in the night watches
of the believers, as is shown by his words. <i>Lib.</i> 2, de
<i>Symbola</i> ad Catechum., cap. 1.</p>

<p>A. D. 402.-Synesius Syrenus, an upright, pious man, became,
from a heathen, a Christian; was baptized by Theophilus, and
afterwards appointed by him bishop of Ptolemais. P. J.
<i>Twisck,</i> Chron., 5th <i>book,</i> page 138, col. 1, from
Evagrius, <i>lib. 1,</i> cap. 15. Mer., fol. 334.</p>

<p>It is true, that it is stated of Synesius Syrenus, that his
faith was not perfect with regard to all the parts of the
Christian religion, concerning which historians specially
mention one particular point; but it is also stated that Bishop
Theophilus, who baptized him, was in hopes, that, in the course
of time, he would judge better on this point, which, it seems
was also the case, since, as it is stated, Theophilus
afterwards appointed him bishop of Ptolemais.</p>

<p>However, we would not commend this part of the matter,
namely, to baptize any one without perfect faith or confession,
especially if an essential point is wanting; but this we
commend, that not children, but adult persons, who are
commended as pious are baptized, and, from heathen, desire to
become Christians, as is stated to have been the case here.</p>

<p>A. D. 406.-At this time it was resolved at Carthage,"That
the candidates shall give in their names, and after they shall
have been examined long, and diligently tried, with the
imposition of hands, they shall be baptized." Also, "That a
bishop, before he be allowed to minister, shall be well
examined in doctrine and life." Also, "That fellowship with the
excommunicated shall be avoided, and the penitent received back
again." <i>P. J. Twisck, Chron., 5th book, page 139, col.
2,</i> from <i>Grond. Bew., letter B. B. halent. Beyer,
fol.</i> 603. Also, <i>Bapt. Hist., page 447. ex Conc.
Carth.</i> 4, cap. 88.</p>

<p>Here applies the annotation of P. <i>J. Twisck,</i> in
<i>Chron., 5th book, page 153, col. 1:</i> "In the fourth
council of Carthage," he writes,"it was decreed that applicants
for baptism shall first be examined for a long time, shall
abstain for a time from wine and meat, and, having been
diligently tried with</p>

</div><div id="190"> 

<p>imposition of hands, shall be baptized." From <i>Chron.,
Seb. Franck,</i> of the Latin councils held in Africa and
Europe, <i>letter C.</i> The time of this council is fixed by
P. J. Twisek (from <i>Seb. Fr.)</i> A. D. 436; but he has
previously given A. D. 406 as the date, and hence we leave it
thus; others, however, give A. D. 416 as the date.</p>

<p>Beloved reader, this is a very different decree from an
earlier one, also made at Carthage, in the time of Cyprian,
about A. D. 250, by sixty-six bishops, in which it was
established, <i>Contra Fidunsy</i> that infants should be
baptized immediately. This is certainly, we say, a very
different decree, since infant baptism is not confirmed, but,
much more, annulled by it; and thus we see that in the course
of time some had grown wiser. Not, that it is our purpose to
prove by councils, our view touching the true baptism, which
must be administered upon faith; not at all, for we find in
nothing less pleasure, than in the decrees of councils, in so
far as they come short of the Word of God. Besides, this point
needs not to be proved by councils, as it is expressed in the
holy Scriptures; we simply mean to show thereby that also at
that time there were persons who, even in the very place where
infant baptism had been ratified, confirmed the true baptism of
Jesus Christ, which must be administered upon previous
examination, and has its foundation in the holy Scriptures. As
to this, that the candidates were commanded, first to abstain
for a time from wine and meat, we leave that as it is, neither
commending nor condemning it, as being a thing which, without
sin, may be observed or omitted, provided no superstition is
connected therewith.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 410. <i>Bapt. Hist., page</i> 408. Sedulius
writes, on Rom. 5, "No man suffers condemnation, except through
Adam; from which men are redeemed through the washing of
regeneration."</p>

<p>But what else is the washing of regeneration, than the death
of the old man, and the putting on of a new life, which is
signified by baptism? See Rom. 6:3,4; Eph. 5:26,27; Tit. 3:5; I
Pet. 3:21.</p>

<p>Again, Sedulius, on Rom. 6, says, "Paul would have baptism so
sure and perfect as to make it impossible for the recipient to
sin any more. When the grace of God came upon us through
Christ, and the spiritual washing reigned in us through faith,
we began to live unto God, being dead unto sin, that is, the
devil. And thus, baptism is an earnest and figure of the
resurrection; and hence it is administered with water, that, as
water washes away impurities, and even so we through baptism,
we believe, are spiritually cleansed and purified from all
sin."</p>

<p>Further, "Know that through baptism you, who have become a
member of His body are crucified with Christ. He hung on the
cross with an innocent body, that you might hang on the cross
the guilty one."</p>

<p>Again, on I Cor. 5, "O that you may be a new leaven; that you
may be mixed with the grace of holy baptism, as flour is mixed
with water." This he seems to speak to those, who, though they
had reached adult years, yet did not make any preparations, but
deferred both their baptism and their regeneration.</p>

<p>Again, on II Cor. 5, "If any man be in Christ, he is a new
creature, " that is, he that is renewed through the sacrament of
baptism.</p>

<p>We will not detain you, dear reader, with explanations on
the above passages of Sedulius, since they, without
explanation, are so clear, that even he that has but little
understanding in divine things, can manifestly see, yea feel,
that the baptism described by Sedulius savors not in the least
of infant baptism, since the conditions he mentions in
connection with it, as faith, regeneration, crucifying the old
man, can not be comprehended, much less fulfilled by
infants.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 411. <i>Bapt. Hist., page</i> 444, <i>ex
Cen</i>turies 5. <i>Magdeburgensis, fol.</i> 664. Augustine
writes that Hilarius, a teacher at Syracuse, wrote, "When an
unbaptized child dies, it can not justly be damned, since it
was born without sin."</p>

<p>A person unacquainted with the condition of things at that
time, may perhaps think that with these words Hilarius of
Syracuse, contributed but little to the abolishment of infant
baptism; but he that is familiar with it, will instantly see
that thereby he utterly denied infant baptism, and stripped it
of its virtues. It deserves mention, that in those times infant
baptism was based upon original sin, so that it was thought
that infants, for the removal of said original sin; must
necessarily be baptized; from which the conclusion was derived,
that infants that were not baptized, and, consequently (in
their opinion), not cleansed from original sin, must
necessarily be damned, as is still taught at the present day by
the Papists.</p>

<p>Whenever then, any one denied original sin, the foundation
of infant baptism, he denied infant baptism itself, yea utterly
annihilated it. This did Hilarius of Syracuse, who denied
original sin in new-born infants, and consequently, infant
baptism; wherefore he, according to Augustine, frankly
said, "When an unbaptized child dies, it cannot justly be
damned, since it was born without sin."</p>

<p><i>A. D. 412. Bapt. Hist., page 407.</i> Theodoretus, in
,chap. 10, says, "In the law they used sprinklings, and
frequently washed the body; but they who order their lives
according to the New Testament, purify the soul by holy
baptism, and free the conscience from previous stains."</p>

<p>Again, in <i>Epist. Dizvin. Decret.:</i> "But instead of
those sprinklings, the gift of holy baptism is sufficient for
those who believe; for it grants not only remission of old or
previous sins, but it also implants (that is, into those who
are thus baptized), the hope of promised good things; it makes
us partakers of the death and resurrection of the Lord; it
imparts the communion and gifts of the Holy Ghost; it makes us
children of God, and not only children, but heirs of God, and
joint heirs with Christ."</p>

</div><div id="191"> 

<p>Again, <i>quaest. 19 on Levit.:</i> "He that believes in
Christ the Saviour, when he is sanctified by the water of holy
baptism, is also cleansed from the stains of sin."</p>

<p>Again, <i>quaest. 1 on Jos.:</i> "As the priests who bore the
ark, went first into Jordan, whereupon all the people, with
Joshua, the princes, and the prophets, passed through; even so,
when John began to baptize, Jesus the Saviour hallowed, as it
were the nature of the water; and the believing people entered
through holy baptism into the kingdom of God."</p>

<p>Who does not see that Theodoretus who wrote A: D. 412, and
afterwards, indicates with all the circumstances, that he
recognized no baptism, than that which is accompanied with
faith and repentance; for when, in the first place, he
says"Those who order their lives according to the New
Testament, purify the soul by holy baptism," and then
says, "Instead of those sprinklings, the gift of holy baptism is
sufficient for those who believe," and finally adds, "The
believing people entered, through baptism, into the kingdom of
God," he certainly indicates that he does not in any wise speak
of the baptism of infants, since they have neither the
knowledge nor the ability, to order their lives in accordance
with the New Testament, or to believe," which are here put down
as absolute conditions in the candidates for baptism.</p>

<p>NOTE.-Theodoretus taught that the figures of the Supper,
namely, the bread and the wine, in no wise change their nature,
but remain as they are, after consecration. <i>Dialog. 2, Sam.
Velt.,</i> in <i>Geslacht-register, pages</i> 123, 124.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 413.- As those Christians greatly increased,
who valued only the baptism which is administered upon faith,
and, consequently rebaptized (as not having been baptized
aright) those who had been baptized by unbelievers or in
infancy, when they attained to the true faith, the Emperor
Theodosius, A. D. 413, issued an edict, against the
Anabaptists, commanding that they should be put to death.
<i>Introduction, page</i> 47, col. 2, <i>from Chron. Baron.,
num.</i> 6.</p>

<p>But lest any one should think that the people who, under the
name of Anabaptists, were threatened with death by the Emperor
Theodosius, held, with regard to this point, views different
from those maintained by the Baptists of the present day, who
are likewise called Anabaptists, it is expedient to mention
what was said about their views by the inquisitor of
Leeuwaerden, in opposition to one of our latest martyrs,
namely, Jagues d' Auchi. When Jagues wanted the inquisitor, who
appealed to the Emperor's edict, to prove that said edict was
just or founded on holy Scripture, the inquisitor made this
reply to him, "I believe you think that all our fathers were
received, and that your sect is saved</p>

<p>what do you say? It is now 1200 or 1300 years since the
Emperor Theodosius issued an edict, that the heretics should be
put to death, namely, those who were rebaptized like your
sect." See the year 1558, and, in the index, the name Jagues d'
Auchi.</p>

<p>When, therefore, .the inquisitor says that they"were
rebaptized like your sect," he certainly indicates thereby,
that they were people like Jagues d' Auchi was, and,
consequently, like the Anabaptists who at that time, namely, A.
D. 1558, gave their lives for the truth.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 415. <i>Bapt. Hist., page 407, Prosperus, ResQ.
2, ad Object. Gallorum,</i> says, "Every one who, believing on
the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost, is regenerated in
baptism, is freed from his own, voluntary and actual, sins, as
well as from original sin."</p>

<p><i>Page</i> 413. Prosperus, in his Epigrams, puts the
martyrs and the candidates for baptism on an equal footing,
when he. says</p>

<p class="c3">"Sanctify, baptism will indeed;</p>

<p class="c3">But the martyr's crown doth all complete."</p>

<p>In the first passage of Prosperus we see that faith,
regeneration, baptism, forsaking of voluntary sins, etc., are
all joined together, even as this is done in the holy
Scriptures of the New Testament. Compare Mark 16:16; Eph. 5:26,
27; Tit. 3:5; I Pet. 3:21, with Matt. 3:6; Mark 1:5; Luke 3:3;
Acts 2:37, 38; Rom. 6:4. Hence it is a scriptural confession;
and there we will let it rest.</p>

<p>In the second passage the martyrs and the candidates for
baptism are compared to one another; but who does not know that
infants cannot be martyrs, seeing they can neither believe nor
confess, much less can they voluntarily confirm said confessed
faith with death, which, nevertheless, is the own work of all
the orthodox and faithful martyrs. Now then, if infants are not
qualified for martyrdom, they are not fit for baptism.
Therefore judge whether this is not comprised in the words of
Prosperus which we have just mentioned.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 418.-The doctrine of infant baptism having been
openly controverted ever since the beginning of this century,
its foundation, namely, original sin, being denied and refuted,
it occurred, A. D. 418, that those of the Roman church in
Africa, through the urgent request of Augustine and his fellow
bishops, obtained the convocation of a council or synod under
Aurelius, bishop of Carthage, composed of two hundred and
fourteen bishops; which council, in the name of the See of
Rome, absolutely anathematized or condemned the views of those
who did not admit infant baptism or recognize original sin in
infants, as well as of those who, opposing predestination, held
that the will of man was free. The 112th Canon contains the
following resolution respecting original sin and baptism, "It is
likewise thought proper, that every one who denies that infants
who are baptized from their birth, are baptized for the
remission of sins, and that they derive from the sin of the
first father, Adam, that from which they must be cleansed
through the washing of regeneration, be anathema, that is,
accursed."</p>

</div><div id="192"> 

<p>It is true, this anathema was aimed particularly at Pelagius
and Celestius, as being the ones who had shown themselves the
principal rejectors of infant baptism, since they positively
said (according to <i>Seb. Franck, Chron., letter
P.), "There</i> is no original sin; hence, baptism is not
needful for children, yea, is useless to them." Again, article
7, "Children are born without original sin; baptism avails them
nothing." Again, article 13, "Though children be not baptized,
they nevertheless have eternal life."</p>

<p>But nevertheless this council, Canon 112, also anathematized
or cursed all those who assented to these views (the rejection
of infant baptism and original sin), for this is specially
expressed with these words, "Everyone who denies that infants
who are baptized from their birth, are baptized for the
remission of sins, be Anathema." For, we know that the word
<i>everyone</i> does not mean any particular person, but many
persons.</p>

<p>It appears therefore, that at that time many people
separated from the Roman church, on account of this view
respecting original sin and infant baptism. However, we would
not defend the views of Pelagius and Celestius, concerning some
other points; it suffices us, that there were people in those
times, who, notwithstanding the excommunication of the pope,
and the persecution of the councils, still opposed the Roman
church, especially through the rejection of infant baptism, and
even, some of them, sacrificed their lives.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 419-421.As the Anabaptists were not yet
deterred by the above council, from maintaining their doctrine
that baptism ought only to be administered upon true faith,
therefore, in order to quench their doctrine, the authority of
said council was confirmed A. D. 419, by the edicts of the
Emperors Honorius and Theodosius, and A. D. 421, by the
additional edict of Constantius; whereby said council forcibly
prevailed throughout the entire Roman empire. See concerning
this, <i>H. Montdn. Nietigh., page</i> 79.</p>

<p>From this it appears that this doctrine of baptizing only
upon true faith, was accepted by very many at that time; for
otherwise it would not have been necessary for the Emperors to
threaten its defenders with the great power of their edicts,
and, as it appears, to persecute them even unto death.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 425. <i>Bapt. Hist., page 411,</i> Maximus
<i>(Homil.</i> 71, <i>de Baptism. Christi)</i> says, "Jesus was
baptized, not for Himself, but for us; not that He might be
purified with the water, but that He (so to speak), might
sanctify the water. The new man was baptized, that He might
confirm the mystery of the new baptism.</p>

<p>When, therefore, Maximus introduces here the baptism of
Christ, which took place when the latter was about thirty years
old, and says that it was not done for Himself, but for us,
that is, for an example to be followed, and that He thereby
confiirmed the mystery of the new baptism, he certainly
indicates thereby, that he is not speaking of he baptism of
infants, since Christ, who, through His baptism, confirmed
baptism, was not a child when He was baptized, but an adult
person. Moreover, as no other contrary testimony concerning him
is found in the history of holy baptism, it seems probable,
that he was not acquainted with any other baptism, and,
consequently, not with infant baptism, or, at least, did not
observe it.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 428.-There were many persons accused, through
the writings of Augustine, of being Anabaptist, or at least, of
defending Anabaptism, inasmuch as they maintained that baptism
administered by heretics or unbelievers was not to be regarded
as true baptism, and that, therefore, those who had been
baptized by such persons, ought to be rebaptized; in short,
that there was no true baptism except that administered in the
true church, and upon true faith. Among those thus accused
Cresconius was not one of the least; in Augustine's writings
the following things are laid to his charge</p>

<p><i>Bapt. Hist., page</i> 416, "That there is but one true
baptism; for it is written: One God, one faith, one baptism,
one undefiled, true church: those who are not in it, the same
cannot have any baptism."</p>

<p>Again, "In baptism, regard is had to the certainty that he
who administers it is such a one that does it in a holy manner;
but this certainly respecting the one who baptizes, is not
judged by the uprightness of his heart, which cannot be seen,
but according to his good reputation, and the respect in which
he is held."</p>

<p>Again, "It -is written: 'The oil of the sinner shall not
anoint my head': hence it follows it is not the will of God,
that an open sinner shall baptize."</p>

<p>Again, "In view of this passage, can anything more absurd be
said, than that one polluted person should purify another? that
one impure person should wash another? that one unclean person
should cleanse another? or that a blasphemer should make any
one innocent?"</p>

<p>Again, "You, our gainsayers, do not distinguish between a
believer and an unbeliever."</p>

<p>Again, "If it were wrong [what we confess], and baptism may
not be annulled [or re-administered], no matter who has
administered it, then the apostles would not have baptized
those who had been baptized by John; but the contrary is seen,"
Acts 19:5.</p>

<p>Again, "In Acts 2:38, Peter commands every Jew to be baptized
upon (or in) the name of Christ, though their forefathers had
been baptized in the Red Sea (I Cor. 10:2) hence, the previous
baptism (that is, the one which has not been administered
rightly), may justly be annulled or changed."</p>

<p>These are the words, or, at least, the meaning, of
Cresconius and his companions, as described by Augustine, and
quoted in the History of Holy Baptism; from which it may be
seen that also at that time but one baptism was recognized,
which must be administered in the true church, by blameless
teachers, and upon true faith, as stated elsewhere.</p>

</div><div id="193"> 

<p>Leaving this, we proceed to others, who at that time, and
afterwards, confessed the same faith, or, at least, as far as
we know, did not oppose it.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 429.-It is recorded that at this time there
flourished Cyril, bishop of Alexandria, who,-writing, among
other things, on baptism, has left some sound testimony
concerning it.</p>

<p>In <i>Bapt. Hist., page</i> 443, the <i>Centurintores
Magdeburgenses</i> have made some extracts from Cyril of
Alexandria, <i>page</i> 613, where they say that he taught as
follows, <i>book 6,</i> on John 14, "Through the -water of the
flood, the sins of the whole world were reconciled (or brought
to an end),.and those who were concealed 'in the ark, were
preserved through the water (of the flood). This was a type of
baptism, by which the impurity of all sin is put off, and the
old life taken away."</p>

<p>Again, "A catechumen is anointed (that is, instructed with
the Word of God), that he may be taught; for the Greek word
<i>catechumenos</i> means, in Latin, one that is being
instructed; and he is baptized, that he may know the true
light, and receive the remission of all sins; therefore, the
virtue or significance of baptism ought not to be esteemed
lightly, since it dispels the darkness of the soul, and imparts
the light of heaven."</p>

<p><i>Page</i> 463, Vicecomes, <i>lib.</i> 2, <i>cap.</i> 24,
Cyril of Alexandria <i>(lib. 7, Contra Julianum)</i> writes, "When we have put off the darkness of our mind, repelled the
legions of Satan, and wisely cast off all their pomp and
service, we confess the faith in God the Father, Son, and Holy
Ghost, and are baptized thereupon."</p>

<p>This finishes the testimonies respecting baptism which I
have been able to find from Cyril of Alexandria. There is
certainly nothing contained in them, which in the least
resembles infant baptism, nay, everything he says concerning
baptism, opposed it. For, when, in the first place, he says
that the impurity of all sin is put off, and the old life taken
away, it is certainly obvious that he does not speak of the
baptism of infants, since they, having no previous impurity of
sin, cannot put it off by baptism, and, having never walked in
the old life, they cannot forsake it or put it away. When he,
secondly, says of the catechumens, that they are baptized, it
is certainly also obvious from it, that it does not concern
infants, since these have not the qualification of being
instructed. The third passage is so clearly opposed to infant
baptism, that it requires no explanation, inasmuch as it
expressly speaks of confessing the faith on God the Father,
Son, and Holy Ghost, and of being baptized thereupon; for this
can never be done by infants in the cradle.</p>

<h2>TOUCHING SOME OTHER POINTS OF CYRIL'S FAITH, ACCORDING TO THE ACCOUNT OF P. J. TWISCK, CHRON., 5TH BOOK, PAGE 152, COL. 1</h2> 
<p>"Cyril, a, celebrated teacher, strenuously opposed the
heresy of Nestorius." Again, "Cyril says: 'Antichrist shall come
when the time of the Roman Empire shall be fulfilled.'", "The mysteries of the faith ought not to be taught
inconsiderately, without the holy Scriptures. If i shall merely
tell you these things, without bringing any proof, do not
believe me, unless you receive from me proof from holy
Scripture; for the salvation of our faith proceeds not from an
eloquent recital, but f rom the demonstration of the divine
Scriptures." <i>Joh. Polii, fol.</i> 93., "It is necessary that we follow the holy Scriptures,
departing in no wise from their precepts." <i>Joh. Polii,
fol.</i> 93. Talent hanni., <i>fol.</i> 41.</p>

<p>Cyril, in the 7th book against Valentiman, says also, in
regard to spiritual eating,"That at the holy table we must not
simply gaze on the bread and wine placed there, or be deceived
thereby, but that, with uplifted hearts, we must apprehend by
faith, that on this holy table there is also the Lamb which
taketh away the sins of the world. This must be apprehended and
eaten spiritually, by faith, and not with the hands."
<i>Chron., Seb. Franck, fol.</i> 65, <i>idem, Chron. Rom.
Kett., fol.</i> 77, col. 2.</p>

<p>Thus Cyril wrote soundly, not only on the matter of baptism,
but also respecting the authority of the divine Scriptures, as
well as, that the substance of the Supper is not the body and
blood of Christ, but bread and wine; and that we must not
become deluded thereby, that is, esteem it for more than it is;
yet that we must eat the Lamb of God, that is, Christ, by
faith, or spiritually.</p>

<p>NOTE.-At this time Cyril taught that those who have died,
can add nothing to what they have done; but that they must
remain what they are, and await the day of judgment.
<i>Lib.</i> 3, on Isaiah. In the <i>Gesldcht-register, page</i>
123.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 430.-In <i>Bapt. Hist., page</i> 392, quoted
from Socrates by Vicecomes, <i>lib. 1,</i> cap. 27, Socrates
writes, in the 7th <i>book</i> of .the <i>Church History</i> "A
Jew, who was very sick, lying almost at the point of death,
desired to be baptized. To this end, he was carried into the
church, where the teacher instructed him in the articles of
faith, and expounded to him the hope on Christ. And having thus
been brought' to baptism on his bed, he was baptized."</p>

<p>Paige 393, from Vicecomes, lib. 3, cap. 5, <i>he</i>
(Socrates) writes <i>(lib. 9,</i> cap. 29. Tripart), "In the
city of Alexandria many hastened to holy baptism, and were
baptized upon the confession of their sins.</p>

<p>Again <i>(Vicecom.., cap. 6,</i> from Socrates, <i>lib.
7,</i> cap. 17), "A Jew came to Paul, the bishop, and desired to
be baptized by him. The latter commended him for his desire,
but refused to baptize him until he should be instructed in the
doctrine of the faith, and have fasted many days. But the Jew,
compelled to fast contrary to the sentiment of his heart,
importuned the more eagerly, and begged</p>

</div><div id="194"> 

<p>to be baptized, which request was finally complied
with."</p>

<p>As regards that which, page 393, is related according to the
account of Vicecomes, <i>lib. 5, cap.</i> 5. from Socrates,
<i>lib. 7,</i> cap. 30, how the Burgundians, having journeyed
to a certain city in France, prayed the Bishop of that city, to
make them Christians by baptism; and how they, after seven days
of fasting, and having been instructed in the faith, were
baptized on the eighth day, and dismissed in peace; about this
we will not say more at present, because these Burgundians in a
certain article in which they should have been taught, were not
yet rightiy instructed; we notice, simply, that they were
baptized upon their faith, and that baptism upon faith was
customary at that place.</p>

<p>Touching the above account from Socrates, respecting the
Jew, who was brought to church on his sickbed, and was baptized
upon his faith, we would not praise or recommend the baptizing
of the sick, when there is more danger of death than hope of
life. Oh no I for baptism should and must be received at a time
when one can voluntarily forsake the old man, put on the new,
and walk thenceforth in newness of life (Rom. 6:4); which no
sick person, much less one that is at the point of death, can
accomplish. Still, it is commendable in this case, that,
according to the doctrine of Christ, faith was required before
baptism, as is also stated of the other Jew, who was baptized
in health; for he asked for baptism, which, after previous
instruction and many days of fasting, was administered to him.
We will say nothing about those of Alexandria, who hastened to
baptism, and were baptized upon confession of their sins; for
the matter speaks so clearly for the views of the Anabaptists,
that an explanation of it is wholly unnecessary.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 434.-Faustus Regiensus, a Bishop in France,
taught that baptism required willingness on the part of him who
comes to it. <i>Lib. 2, de lib. Arb., cap. 8. Jacob Mehrning,
Bapt. Hist., page</i> 425.</p>

<p>About the same time Evagrius is mentioned, who, in writing
on baptism, <i>(lib.</i> 2), says"that after the water was
blessed, the candidates, that is, those who had previously been
instructed by the Word of God, in the catechism, and were found
enlightened, were baptized." <i>Bapt. Hist., page</i> 421.</p>

<p>These testimonies of Faustus and Evagrius prove that the
baptism of which they speak, is entirely different from infant
baptism; for, when Faustus says that baptism requires
willingness on the part of him who comes to it; and Evagrius
dedares that those who had previously been instructed by the
Word of God, in the catechism, were baptized, it is certainly
very evident that this does not apply to infants, since these
cannot come to' baptism with a will of their own, or
voluntarily; neither can they, before baptism, be instructed by
the Word of God, in the catechism, much less become
enlightened. NOTE.-It is recorded that in the time of Honorius
A. D. 436, even those of Carthage passed this resolution, "Those
who wish to receive baptism, shall previously be tried and
examined for a long time." <i>Seb. Fr., Chron. Rom. Cone, fol.
71,</i> col. 4.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 438.-Eucherius (in <i>lib.</i> 3, <i>Reg.),</i>
says, "We are all baptized upon confession of the Father, the
Son, and the Holy Ghost." <i>Bapt. Hist., page</i> 403.</p>

<p>Again (in <i>lib.</i> 3, Coin. in <i>lib. Reg.),</i>
Eucherius, in speaking of the imposition of hands, says, "The
sacrifice is washed, when the water of baptism is poured upon a
believer."</p>

<p>In <i>lib.</i> 4, he says, "In descending to baptism, he that
believes on Christ, dies unto original sin and all iniquity."
<i>Bapt. Hist., page</i> 428.</p>

<p>Truly, these are excellent testimonies, which very closely
approach the form of the holy Scriptures; for here mention is
made of a certain confession of the candidates; as also, that
the water of baptism is poured upon the believer; and that he
who descends to baptism, dies unto original sin and all
iniquity; which matters are so frequently mentioned in the holy
Scriptures of the New Testament, that it is unnecessary to
adduce any proof concerning them, since they are sufficiently
known. Compare, among others, Matt. 3:6; Mark 16:16; with Rom.
6:3, 4.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 446.-Notwithstanding those of Carthage swayed
to and fro, like a shaking reed, in the matter of baptism, as
may be seen by their many councils, there were, nevertheless,
as it appears, many pious people there, who kept to the
institution of Christ, and the practice of His apostles,
inasmuch as they baptized upon faith, of which, among others,
Augustine makes mention in the 22d <i>book,</i> 8th <i>chapter,
of</i> the City of God, saying,"That when Easter was at hand,
and the women (that is, those who had made application for
baptism), were waiting for baptism."</p>

<p>But that which he relates in the same place, of the very
pious woman Innocentia, namely, that, being afflicted with an
incurable cancer, she went to the first woman that was
baptized, to be marked by her. with the sign of Christ, in
order that she might have her health restored, this we leave as
it is, it being sufficient for us, that even in Carthage, where
infant baptism had already been adopted, there were people who
administered baptism to adults, or, at least, to believers; and
that this was done at a stated time, namely, on Easter. This is
also mentioned in <i>Bapt. Hist., page 433.</i></p>

<p>A. D. 450.-It appears that about the middle of the fifth
century, a departure began to manifest itself even in the Roman
church, among those who did not favor infant baptism; inasmuch
as many were found, who had not been baptized in their youth.
But as to whether these were known, or whether they kept it
secret, we have no information; however, it is apparent that,
in the course of time, they became manifest, since, with
reference</p>

</div><div id="195"> 

<p>to the matter, the Council of Arausica* established certain
canons or rules in regard to the manner in which such persons
should be treated. <i>Bapt. Hist., p. 440,</i> from <i>Centuriw
Magdeburgenses,</i> fol. 510, <i>ex Conch. Arausic.</i></p>

<p><i>Canon 12.</i> "A person who has suddenly become dumb,
shall have baptism, or repentance, administered to him, if it
be proved by his own testimony, or by that of someone else,
that he has previously wished it; or if he indicate it by
signs."</p>

<p><i>Canon 14</i> "The unbaptized weak (members), who are
concerned about their purification, and commit themselves to
spiritual guardians, following their admonitions, may commune,
in order that, through the virtue of the sacrament received,
they may be strengthened against the assaults of the
devil."</p>

<p><i>Canon</i> 15."Weak catechumens shall be provided with
baptism, according as necessity and opportunity demand."</p>

<p>There were still other canons or rules, established by said
council, from which it appears that at that time many people
omitted to have their children baptized, so that the latter,
when they had reached adult years, were still unbaptized; as
Canons 18, 19, <i>20.</i> But it suffices us briefly to have
shown this, since by our promise we are not bound to prove
anything further than that in all the centuries, from the time
of Christ, there were persons, few or many, who rejected infant
baptism, and observed the true baptism upon faith, according to
the institution of Christ and the example of His apostles.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 454.-It is recorded for this year, that
Nazarius, the son of Perpetua, a Christian woman, followed the
religion of his mother, when he was still very young, and that
he was baptized after previous catechization or instruction.
Tract, <i>Gantsch Grondig. Bewijs., 1581.</i> Also, <i>Kort
verIzael van den loop der Werelt,</i> compared with P. 1.
<i>Twisck, Chron., 5</i>th <i>book, page 160, col. 2.</i></p>

<p>As to the teacher who baptized Nazarius, his name is
differently given by different writers; hence, we pass him by,
simply noticing the faith of Perpetua, and the baptism of her
son; for it appears from the circumstances, that Perpetua was a
Christian woman, who herself professed the Christian religion,
but who nevertheless let her son remain without baptism in his
infancy, apparently regarding infant baptism as unlawful, or at
least without benefit; besides this it appears that Nazarius,
her son, regarded baptism upon faith as good and necessary,
notwithstanding he was born of a Christian mother, else he
would not have had himself baptized, upon having come to adult
years.</p>

<p>NOTE.-A. D. 455.-Montluck, Bishop of Valence said before the
King of France, it should be borne in mind, that there were 380
bishops in the</p>

<br /><cite>* This council, also called"Coacilium
Arausione", is stated to have taken place, A.D. 441. In the
same it was decreed, by command of antichrist, that the
Gospel should not be read to the cato chumena, and that they
should not be admitted to the place of baptism. See P. J.
Twisck, Chron., Sth book, page 155, Col. 1. council of Nice,
150 in the council of Constantinople, <i>200</i> in the council
of Ephesus, and 300 in the council of Chalcedon, who would use
no other weapons than the Word of God, against the Arians,
Macedonians, Nestorians, and others. P. I. Twisck,
<i>Chron.,</i> 5th <i>book, page</i> 161, col. 1, from <i>Den
Stant der Religie, 200.</i></cite> 

<p><i>A. D.</i> 456.-Gelasius taught at this time, that in the
Supper there are celebrated the figures of the body and blood
of Christ, and that, through the Holy Ghost we become partakers
of divine things, though the bread and wine continue what they
are. In the <i>Book of the two Natures.</i> See <i>Sam.
Veltius, Geslacht-register, page 124.</i></p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 458.-Salvian of Massilia (Marseilles) lib. 6,
<i>de Providentia (Bapt. Hist., page 448), says</i> to the
candidates, "You say: 'I renounce the devil, his pomp, his
adherents, and his works.' And what else? You also say: 'I
believe on God the Father, and on Jesus Christ His Son.' Thus,
one first forsakes the devil, that he may believe on God; but
whosoever does not forsake the devil, does not believe on God;
and whosoever turns again to the devil, forsakes God." These
things, says the annotator, can in no wise be said of
infants.</p>

<p>From this formula, which the candidates at that time were
obliged to confess publicly, we certainly see without
controversy, that it stood altogether differently with the
matter of baptism, than is now the case among many so-called
Christians; for then the candidates had to make confession
themselves of their faith, before they were baptized; but now,
in many places, when infants are baptized, no con-</p>

<p>fession is demanded, or, if demanded, is not made by the
children themselves, since they cannot do it, but by their
parents, or godfathers and godmothers, who bring them to
baptism; however, if the confession is demanded from the
children themselves, they do not make it before baptism (as is
required by holy Scripture), but after baptism, so that twenty,
thirty, sixty, or even more years, elapse, yea, that their
baptism is forgotten by the time they make their confession;
and some who are baptized, never make their confession.</p>

<p>What is to be held of such a baptism, may easily be judged;
but as it is not our purpose to refute this error, we let this
matter rest; in the meantime it suffices us, that in the latter
half of the fifth century there were people, yea, distinguished
persons, who, notwithstanding the superstitions of popery,
especially with regard to infant baptism, kept to the ordinance
of Christ, baptizing only upon faith, or after previous
instruction.</p>

<p>A, D. 460.-About this time, according to the account of the
ancients, the God-fearing and noted persons, Anthymius,
Sisinnius, and Sociorus, be-</p>

<p>took themselves, by baptism, under the peaceable banner of
Jesus Christ, to be champions and servants of His, having
confessed the faith and acknowledged Him as their Lord; which
took place after they had been instructed for seven days.
Ref</p>

</div><div id="196"> 

<p>erence is had to this, in <i>Bapt. Hist.,</i> page 448, from
<i>hicecom., lib.</i> 2, <i>cap.</i> 8, where it is related
that when they had been learning, for seven days, the mystery
of Jesus Christ, that is, the faith, they were baptized.</p>

<p>A. D. 465. <i>D. hicecomes, lib.</i> 5, <i>cap.</i> 48,
gives an account, from Nolanus, of the hymns which the
Christians at that time used to sing over the newly baptized
believers."Nolanus," he says,"also describes, in a special hymn
the extraordinary spiritual joy which the Christians were
(then) wont to have over the newly baptized." <i>Bapt.
Hist.,</i> p. 463.</p>

<p>What the contents of these joyful hymns were, is not stated,
only that with them extraordinary spiritual joy was expressed.
It undoubtedly was the endeavor, to praise God with them, to
edify the <i>church, and</i> to strengthen the newly baptized
in the accepted faith, in order that they might pay their vows
unto God; always remember the day of their enlightenment; walk
in the Lord Jesus Christ, whom they had now accepted, and if
necessary, also lay down their life for Him, and thus, having
testified to the faith with their blood, obtain the unfading
crown of honor.</p>

<p>NOTE.-In the meantime, those of the Roman church sought to
abolish Christ's true ordinance of baptism; to which tended the
canon established in the council held A. D. 469, at Chalcedon,
which read as follows, "Those who are not baptized, shall not be
baptized by heretics." <i>Seb. Fr., Chron. der Rom. Kett.,
fol.</i> 71, col. 1.</p>

<p>A. D. 470.-It appears that at this time, through the power
of the pope and the councils, they began to condemn Anabaptism,
and, consequently, to excommunicate and treat as heretics, the
so-called Anabaptists; which is stated to have been put into
effect A. D. 470, ire the fourth council of Rome. To this
refers the annotation found in the 5th <i>book</i> of the
<i>Chronijk of P. 1. Tzvisck, page</i> 164, col. 1, from
<i>Valentinus Beyer, fol.</i> 635, "In the fourth council of
Rome Anabaptism was condemned."</p>

<p>But it did not stop here; for, A. D. 487, seventeen years
afterwards, Pope Felix III, the fiftieth in the register of the
popes, by the aid of a council then held, established different
other articles against Anabaptism and the Anabaptists, very
evidently, with a view to their suppression.</p>

<p>A. <i>B.</i> 487.-Many now, from time to time, separated
from the Roman church, rejecting her superstitions and invented
ordinances of worship, and desiring to have no fellowship with
the mystery of wickedness, which just then began greatly to
rise among the Romanists, so that not only many of the common
people, but also, it appears, some eminent clerical and learned
persons, separated themselves from the Roman religion in such a
manner, that they, in token of this, were baptized upon faith,
by those who were called heretics or Anabaptists,
notwithstanding they had been baptized in their youth by the
Romanists. In order:o prevent this, the pope or bishop of Rome,
whose name was Felix, made the most strenuous efforts,*
convoking for this end, A. D. 487, a synod or council, in the
city of Rome; concerning which the following account is given
in <i>Bapt. Hist., page</i> 442, from <i>Centuria
Magdeburgenses, fol.</i> 538, "In a synod held at Rome, A. D.
487, by Pope Felix, who had learned that in Africa, some
eccelesiastics, priests, and bishops had been rebaptized
together with numbers of the common people, it was decreed, "1. If those that have been rebaptized are grievously sorry,
and desire to do penance, they shall be received kindly, and,
as usual, by the priests., "2. The priests and ecclesiastics that have fallen, and been
baptized with the baptism of heretics, shall do penance to the
end of their life., "3. Other ecclesiastics, as monks, nuns, and seculars, who
have fallen, and been rebaptized, shall remain three years
among the catechumens, and seven years among the penitents;
shall not offer for the space of two years, but pray among the
seculars; however, if they be overtaken by death during this
time, the bishop, or a priest shall absolve them., "4. Those who have been baptized or rebaptized by heretics,
shall not be permitted to receive any ecclesiastical office,
but must be content (that is, if they return) with being
received into the number of. the Catholics."</p>

<p>All these articles-the fourth one we have passed over as
irrelevant-sufficiently indicate that those who were then
called Anabaptists must have increased greatly and commanded no
small respect, since not only the common people, but also (as
the second and third article declare) priests, ecclesiastics,
and other clerical persons, as monks, nuns, etc., though
baptized in youth, were rebaptized, that is, baptized upon
faith; which is the more evident from the fact that the pope
considered the matter of sufficient importance, to convoke, in
order to weaken the so-called Anabaptists and maintain the
Roman church, a public synod or council, and publish laws and
rules against them. Also P. J. Twisck makes mention of this, in
his <i>Chron., 5th book,</i> page 167, col. 2, fixing, however,
the date of this occurrence on the year 483, which is four
years earlier than in <i>Bapt. History.</i></p>

<p>He says, "Felix III, the fiftieth pope of Rome, ordained that
the churches should be consecrated by the bishops, and that
annual wakes or church masses-real bacchanals-should be
celebrated. In his time it was also decreed in a council, that
persons baptized by heretics, or rebaptized, should not be
received into any ecclesiastical order. Said council also had
under consideration those who had been rebaptized in Africa,
and desired to do penance; as well as, what should be done with
the bishops, priests, monks, and nuns, who had been</p>

<br /><cite>* The pope and the councils had commenced making
such efforts, it appears, already A.D. 470, seventeen years
earlier; for at that time Anabaptism was condemned at Rome, as
has been shown.</cite> 

</div><div id="197"> 

<p>rebaptized." From <i>Plating, fol.</i> 91. <i>Fasc. Temp.,
fol. 112. Hist. Georg., lib.</i> 3.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 494.-At this time flourished Primasius; he
explains I Tim. 6:12, where the apostle says, "Thou hast professed a good profession before many
witnesses," as having reference to baptism. See <i>Bapt. Hist.,
page</i> 483, from <i>Joseph Vicecomes, lib. 5, cap.</i>
37.</p>

<p>But, beloved reader, how can this passage apply to baptism,
or be interpreted with reference to it, unless we understand
that the good profession of which the apostle speaks, is
attributed to the candidates for baptism; so that, as Timothy
(of whom he says this) professed a good profession before many
witnesses, even so must yet at this day all who are to be
baptized, profess a good profession before many witnesses. But
new-born infants cannot do this; hence, the baptism of which
Primasius here speaks does not relate to infants.</p>

<p>Afterwards, in his first book on John's Revelation, he
says, "He is arrayed in a white robe, who is clothed with
Christ, and is strong in the faith which worketh by love; but
as many of you as have been baptized, have put on Christ." Gal.
3:27. <i>Bapt. Hist., page</i> 408.</p>

<p>Nowhere in the holy Scriptures, are infants enjoined to put
on Christ; but this is throughout and without exception said to
believers. See Rom. 13:14; Gal. 3:27; Eph. 4:24; -Col. 3:10.
These epistles were written and sent only to believers. But to
remove all doubt, Primasius himself explains what he
understands by this putting on of Christ, by adding, "and is
strong in the faith." This is certainly not anything that
children can do; hence the baptism which he applies to such as
he speaks of is not the baptism of infants.</p>

<p>NOTE.-At this time mention is made, in a certain African
council, of certain people, as being agitators with regard to
baptism, and how they should be suppressed. Compare <i>Seb.
Franck, Chron. Rom., Conc.,</i> fol. 48, col. 4, with our
remarks in the account of the martyrs of the fifth century, on
the year 497.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 498.-It is stated that at this time there lived
ynd wrote, the excellent teacher, Fulgentius, who, writing,
among other things on baptism says <i>(lib. de fide, ad Petrum,
cap.</i> 30), "Rest assured of this, and doubt not in anywise."
Continuing he says, "That no man can receive eternal life, who
has not previously been converted from his sins through
repentance and faith, and through the sacrament of faith and
repentance been redeemed, that is, through baptism; this is
absolutely necessary for adults, namely that they repent of
their sins, understand the common faith, according to the
truth, and receive the sacrament of baptism (upon it)."</p>

<p>This is the only testimony of Fulgentius, respecting
baptism, which we have been able to find; from which we can
draw no other conclusion than that he esteemed baptism upon
faith very highly, yea, that this, and no other, was considered
true baptism by him; for when he speaks of baptism, he connects
it with faith and repentance, and, hence, calls it a sacrament
of faith and repentance, adding that it is necessary for
adults. How could one speak more clearly and plainly of the
true Christian and apostolical baptism, which is peculiar to
believers and penitents. We will, therefore, let the matter
rest, as having been sufficiently explained by Fulgentius.</p>

<p>NOTE.-It appears that the doctrine of baptism upon faith had
at this time, A. D. 498, made its way even to the papal chair,
which, however, we do not recognize. <i>Bapt. Hist., page</i>
463, Pope Leo I, in his epistle, declaims with great warmth
against the Bishops of Sicily, Campania, Samnia, and Picena,
because they baptized not only on Easter and Whitsuntide, but
also on Epiphany and other holidays. Observe: this is utterly
opposed to infant baptism, as we have shown elsewhere. On page
464, Pope Leo <i>(Sean. 1, de natia Dom, cap.</i> 4) thus
exhorts those who had been baptized, "Remain steadfast in the
faith which you have confessed before many witnesses, and in
which you are regenerated." Again, Leo writes <i>(Epist.</i> 4,
ad <i>Episcob., in Sicilia, cap.</i> 6), "You plainly see that
two reasons must be observed, in which the elect (that is,
believers) are to be baptized."</p>

<p>See, beloved reader, such is the power of truth, that even
the mouth of the liar, yea, of antichrist, must confess it. But
though Pope Leo confessed this, other popes declared those who
confessed the same, heretics, yea, cursed, persecuted, and
killed them, as shall be shown in the proper place.</p>

<p>At this time Fulgentius taught that the holy Scriptures
contained all that was necessary for salvation-food for
children, as well as for adults. <i>S. Veltius,
Geschlacht-register,</i> 1649, <i>page</i> 123.</p>

<p><i>A. D. 500. P. J.</i> Twisck, in the conclusion of his
account of the fifth century, complains of the desolation, both
in civil and spiritual affairs, occasioned chiefly by the power
of the Pope of Rome, saying, "In this time, and still longer,
through the desolation caused in the lands by the invasion of
many different armies, and by other destroyers, as well as
through immorality and heresies, the best people and chiefest
authors perished, piety and learning diminished, and whatever
of good remained, became for the most part corrupted. For
although the baptism of adults was still administered, and
church history from the time of Christ up to about this period,
does not in the least, as far as I know, mention infant
baptism, the latter nevertheless, according to other writers,
more .and more lifts up its head, and this with papal
pollution, is confirmed by a decree, and considered not
necessary to salvation." <i>Chron. 5th book, page 174.</i></p>

<p>From this we may gather the reason why at times so few
orthodox and good writers are found, and, hence, how it comes
that in those early days, there was sometimes, for a long
period, only one, or a few, who openly maintained baptism upon
faith,</p>

</div><div id="198"> 

<p>and other wholesome articles of faith, of which we will not
speak further now.</p>

<p>The statement, that church history, from the time of Christ
up to about this time (A. D. 500), does not in the least
mention infant baptism, gives rise to the grave suspicion, that
the authors which appear to have written long before the year
500, were interpolated by some of their descendants who
maintained infant baptism. A few instances of this kind we have
already given, respecting the writings of Dionysius the
Areopagite, Justin, Origen, and others.</p>

<p>But be this as it may, posterity must make the best of the
aforesaid writings, as we also must now do; and, according to
their account, infant baptism obtained at this time, and long
before, in many of the (Roman) churches, though many kept aloof
from it, so that even with them, it was not generally adopted
until about the year 900, yea, almost to the year 1000, as we
hope to show in the proper place, ,and as may be seen in
various prominent authors.</p>

<p>In the meantime we have shown (which suffices us) that the
fifth century was not without men who, opposing infant baptism,
maintained baptism upon faith, according to the teaching of
Christ, and confirmed it by doctrine and example.</p>

<p>NOTE.-It is stated that about A. D. 500, Clodovius and his
people were baptized upon faith, or the confession of the same,
by Remigius, Bishop of Rheins. Bapt. <i>Hist., page</i> 435.
But he did not show himself a Christian in every respect, which
we would not commend. Moreover, his two sons were baptized
before his conversion as Blondus writes (lib. 3, <i>decade
1,</i> also <i>Bmpt. Hist., page</i> 436), notwithstanding
their mother, Clotildis was a godly, Christian woman, as is
stated in <i>Bapt. Hist., page</i> 435. From this it appears
that at that time, even among the Romanists, it was not a
general custom to baptize infants, but that some permitted
their children to attain to the years of understanding, before
they were baptized; however in other places, in the Roman
dominion, infant baptism was strictly observed. In the meantime
the true Christians kept quiet, and practiced baptism upon
faith, as has been sufficiently shown.</p>

 
   <h1>AN ACCOUNT OF THOSE WHO SUFFERED IN THE FIFTH CENTURY: SUMMARY OF THE MARTYRS OF THE FIFTH CENTURY</h1>

<p>[First of all, mention is made of the tyrants who in the
beginning of this century tyrannized over the defenseless lambs
of Christ; among them are mentioned Isdigerdis, and his son
Geroranes.</p>

<p>The bloody edict issued by the two Emperors, Honorius and
Theodosius, against the so-called Anabaptists, is adduced,
according to different versions, and explained.</p>

<p>The couplet of Prosperus, which proclaims to he candidates
for baptism, that their baptism must be perfected by martyrdom,
is explained.</p>

<p>Albanus, a pious teacher at Mentz,* and others,
martyred.</p>

<p>The threatenings of the Nestorian Emperor, Theodosius,
against the upright teacher, Cyril of Alexandria.</p>

<p>The tyranny of Theodosius, Bishop of Jerusalem, against many
upright people, especially towards a pious teacher of the
church of Christ, whom he first caused to be scourged, and then
beheaded.</p>

<p>Benjamin, a deacon, after suffering many torments, put to
death with a knotty stick, in Persia.</p>

<p>The cruelty of Honoricus, the Arian King, towards certain
bishops and elders who would not swear an oath, described at
large, as also his destruction.</p>

<p>Thereupon it is shown in the margin, that about this time,
in different councils held in Africa, there were made five
hundred and five laws, some of them relating to infant baptism;
the agitation about baptism, suppression of the same, etc.</p>

<p>The bloody oppression of the believers, which, it appears,
occurred in the time of Fulgentius.</p>

<p>Two persons who denied infant baptism, condemned in a
certain council at Carthage (as is shown in the margin); but we
commit them to God. With this we conclude the fifth
century.]</p>

<p>We now come to fulfill the promise we repeatedly made in the
Account of Baptism in the fifth century, namely, that we would
show that of those who were baptized according to the ordinance
of Christ, and of those who defended them and their views, a
number had to lose their lives on this account; and that
others, who escaped death, were severely persecuted or had to
suffer corporal punishment. In order to show this properly, we
shall first notice the tyrants of this time, and their tyranny;
and then the persons who through this tyranny were oppressed
and suffered unto blood.</p>

<h2>TOUCHING THE TYRANTS OF THIS TIME, AND THEIR TYRANNY, ACCORDING TO THE ACCOUNT CONTAINED IN THE FIFTH BOOK OF THE ONDERGANG DER TYRANNEN, FOR THE YEAR 401, PAGE 135, COL. 2</h2> 

<p>Among all the cruel bloodhounds, and persecutors of the
Christians may well be counted Isdigerdis and his son,
Geroranes, who not only flayed and roasted the Christians
alive, but also split reeds, and bound them, with the cut side
inwards, tightly around the naked bodies of the martyrs, whom
they then drew out by force, thus shockingly lacerating the
bodies of the Christians. They also confined the steadfast
martyrs, naked, in cells, bound them hand and foot, and then
chased in a great number of rats, which, impelled by hunger,
gnawed their bodies, and, in the course of time, entirely
devoured them. Nevertheless, they could not, through these</p>

<br /><cite>* Or Mayance.</cite> 

</div><div id="199"> 

<p>and similar cruelties, force many Christians to a denial of
their Redeemer. All this is related in order to convey an idea
of the cruel tyranny which was at this time practiced against
the Christians. Compare with <i>Chron. Leonh., lib. 2. Will
Baudart. Denckw., lib. 5. Hist. Joh. Wega, lib. 4, cap. 3.
Theodoret., lib. 5, carp. 39.</i></p>

<h2>THE BLOODY EDICT ISSUED, A. D. <i>413,</i>
AGAINST THE SO-CALLED ANABAPTISTS, BY THE TWO EASTERN EMPERORS, THEODOSIUS AND HONORIUS</h2> 

<p>In order to give a thorough account of this bloody edict,
and this in the best possible manner, we shall present the
different versions which we have found of it, word for word,
and then state our own views in regard to the matter.</p>

<h2>FIRST VERSION, ACCORDING TO THE ACCOUNT OF SEBASTIAN FRANCK, IN HIS CHRONIJK,
<i>1563,</i> FOL. <i>136,</i> COL. <i>3</i></h2> 
<p>"The most important matter in this transaction" he
writes,"is the imperial code, which contains <i>cap. 1, lib.
2,</i> an edict issued by the Emperors Theodosius and Honorius,
which reads thus: 'If any minister of the Christian church is
found guilty of having rebaptized any one, he, together with
the person thus rebaptized, provided the latter is proved to be
of such an age as to understand the crime, shall be put to
death."'</p>

<h2>SECOND VERSION, ACCORDING TO THE ANNOTATION OF MARTIN BELLIUS, IN THE TRACT, VAN DE KETTERS, EN OF MAN DE SELVE SAL VER VOLGEN, DEDICATED TO CHRISTOPHER, DUKE OF WURTEMBERG, PAGE <i>53</i></h2> 
<p>"Since we must speak," he writes,"of that imperial code, we
will relate the following, namely, about the law contained in
the first codex prohibiting rebaptism. Joined to the other, it
reads thus</p>

<p>"The Emperors, Honorius and Theodosius, to A. A.
Antonius, the magistrate, "If information is obtained that any one has rebaptized a
servant of the Catholic [general] religion, he shall be put to
death, together with the latter, who has committed a punishable
crime, provided he is of an age admitting of the capability, to
commit such (and has been instructed concerning the
matter)."</p>

<h2>THE ABOVE EDICT, ACCORDING TO THE ANNALS OF CARDINAL CJESAR BARONIUS, IN HIS CHRONICLES, A. D. <i>413,</i> NUMBER <i>6</i></h2> 

<p>In that year, he writes, the Emperor Theodosius issued an
edict against the Anabaptists, commanding that they should be
put to death.</p>

<p>This was subsequently also quoted by the inquisitor of
Leeuwaerden, in his controversy with Jacques d' Allchi, in the
year 1558. See <i>register of</i> <i>the 2d book, on the name
Jacques.</i> Also, <i>Inwoduction, fol. 47, col. 2.</i></p>

<p>These several versions of the edict of Honoriu and
Theodosius unanimously indicate three things 1. That at that
time, A. D. <i>413,</i> there were peopl who were called
Anabaptists. 2. That on accoun of this matter of rebaptizing,
these people were exceedingly hated by the world, especially by
the great. <i>3.</i> it is shown how they were hated, namely,
unto death, so that the command was given, that they should be
punished with death. However, intelligent people well know,
that Christ, our Saviour predicted long before, that such thing
would befall His disciples and followers. Matt <i>10:22;
24:9;</i> Mark 13:9; Luke <i>21:12;</i> John <i>15:19;
16:2.</i></p>

<p>Moreover, that the afore-mentioned (people against whom said
edict was issued, were no strange, unknown, erring spirits, but
such peopl as are also in our day styled Anabaptists; this no
only the inquisitor of Leeuwaerden, A. D. <i>1558</i> readily
admitted, as has been shown in the prope place, but all the
particulars of the last mentione authors make it almost as
clear as the sun at midday, that this is the general opinion of
the Roman ists. Nay, it appears that the edict of Honoriu and
Theodosius was carried into execution, no only A. D.
<i>413,</i> and in some of the subsequen years, but that it was
no small cause of the last great persecution of the
Anabaptists, which began about A. D. <i>1524,</i> through the
strong urging of the Papists, especially of their clergy, who,
to all appearance, by it induced the Emperor, Charles V to
renew said edict against the Anabaptists of thei time, as being
an identical people, and of the same faith, with those who
lived in the time of Honoriu and Theodosius. At least, that
many papistic magistrates put to death innumerable pious
Anabaptis Christians, by virtue of said ancient edict of A. D.
<i>413,</i> appears with such certainty from various authors,
that it cannot, with truth, be denied. Compare <i>Seb. Franck,
fol. 136, col. 3,</i> with <i>Marti Bellius, page 53.</i></p>

<p>Now the couplet of Prosperus was verified namely, that
baptism did indeed sanctify the true candidate in some measure,
but that all this was perfected by the crown of martyrdom. This
was afterwards rendered in German, by Jacob Mehrn ing, thus</p>

<p><i>"Was heylligs bringt die Tmuffe schon</i><br />
<i>Solchs gants erfuellet der Martrer chron."*</i></p>

<p class="c8">Bapt. Hist., 2d part, Page 413, ex Prosp. in
Epigramm.</p>

<p>He means to say that those who were then baptized, had to
expect martyrdom. We shall therefore show what persons suffered
at this time for the testimony of Jesus Christ, either by
virtue of the above-mentioned edict, or otherwise., " English this may be rendered thus:</p>

<p>Sanctify, baptism will indeed</p>

<p>But the martyr's crown doth all complete."</p>

</div><div id="200"> 

<h2>ALBANUS, A PIOUS TEACHER AT MENTZ, WITH OTHERS, MARTYRED FOR THE FAITH, A. D. <i>424</i></h2> 

<p>In A. D. <i>424,</i> eleven years after the Emperors
Honorius and Theodosius had issued their bloody edict against
the so-called Anabaptists, a pious teacher, who, intending to
spread abroad the name of Jesus Christ, and promulgate the
doctrines of the holy Gospel, had come to Mentz, was lamentably
slain; as were also some others. Besides other authors, P. J.
Twisck describes this, with these words, "When Albanus preached
Christ at Mentz, he was martyred, together with others."
<i>Chron., 5th book, page 149, col. 2,</i> from Hist. <i>Andr.
143.</i></p>

<h2>THE SEVERE THREATENINGS OF THE NESTORIAN EMPEROR THEODOSIUS, AGAINST THE FAITHFUL TEACHER, CYRIL OF ALEXANDRIA, BECAUSE THE LATTER WOULD NOT ACCEPT THE NESTORIAN ERRORS, A. D. <i>429</i></h2> 

<p>The Emperor Theodosius, not content with havink, together
with his co-emperor, Honorius, A. D. <i>413,</i> threatened the
aforesaid Anabaptists with death, seems to have finally been
seduced so far as to endeavor to compel the orthodox believers
to assent to the very absurd errors of the Nestorians. Among
others, he intended to compel, as one of the chief opponents of
said errors, Cyril of Alexandria, the purity and uprightness of
whose faith was very conspicuous. He threatened him with a
certain edict (apparently with severe punishment), if he would
not desist from his views, or at least accept the doctrine of
Nestorius. Of this we find the following account in the
<i>Chronijk van den Qndergang der Tyrannen:</i> "Cyril, a
celebrated teacher, strenuously opposed the heresy of
Nestorius; but as the Emperor Theodosius, who, in many respects
is greatly praised, was somewhat infected with the doctrine of
Nestorius, he sent Cyril an edict, severely threatening him, if
he would not assent to the doctrine of Nestorius."</p>

<p><i>Fifth book, pag. 151, col. 21,</i> from <i>Merula,
fol.</i> <i>352.</i></p>

<h2>THE TYRANNY OF THEODOSIUS, BISHOP OF JERUSALEM, TOWARD MANY UPRIGHT PEOPLE, BUT IN PARTICULAR, TOWARD A PIOUS TEACHER OF THE CHRISTIAN CHURCH, WHO WAS FIRST SCOURGED AND THEN BEHEADED, A'. D. <i>453</i></h2> 

<p>Not only the Emperor Theodosius, who was a secular judge,
but also one Theodosius, Bishop of Jerusalem, who ought to have
been a spiritual judge, yea, a shepherd and leader of the flock
of Jesus Christ, caused no small disturbance among the
orthodox, well-meaning, and beloved friends of God.</p>

<p>Of Theodosius, the secular judge and Emperor, we have
already spoken; we now speak of Theodo sius of Jerusalem, who,
though only the administration of the spiritual law was
committed to him, nevertheless, showed himself not less of a
tyrant than the former, oppressing on account of their
obedience to God, not only the souls and consciences of men,
but also their bodies, even unto death. With regard to this,
ancient writers furnish us among others, with the following
example</p>

<p>That he had a certain pious minister of the church of Christ
scourged and beheaded, and after his body had been dragged
through the city, he caused it to be thrown before the dogs;
simply because the latter, together with other pious
Christians, opposed his wickedness. Compare <i>Merulae Tract,
fol. 370,</i> with P. J. <i>Twisck, chron. 5th book, pag. 160,
col. 1.</i></p>

<h2>BENJAMIN, A DEACON OF THE CHURCH OF CHRIST, AFTER SUFFERING MANY TORMENTS, FOR THE NAME OF THE LORD JESUS, PUT TO DEATH WITH A KNOTTY STICK IN PERSIA, A. D. <i>456</i></h2> 

<p>This Benjamin was a deacon of the Christian church in
Persia, who, when opportunity offered itself, also proclaimed
the doctrines of the holy Gospel to the people, at which
Geroranes, the King of Persia, took such offense, that he
caused him to be cast into prison, in which he remained without
deliverance for two years. After this a certain ambassador came
to the King to transact some state business. Having heard of
Benjamin and his dreary confinement, he besought the King to
set him free. The King consented, yet on the condition, that
the prisoner should not speak to any of his magi or priests of
the Christian religion or dispute with them. The ambassador
promised the King in Benjamin's name that his command should be
heeded. But when he came to Benjamin, and admonished him to
this, Benjamin answered, "I do not wish to do what you have
promised in my name. I can not withhold the doctrine of the
light of the Gospel, which I have received from God, from
others, not communicating it to them; for I have learned from
the Gospel how severely those will be punished, who bury the
talent which has been given them to gain something therewith,
in the earth."</p>

<p>In the meantime, the King, knowing nothing of the answer
which Benjamin had returned to the ambassador gave command to
release him from his confinement. Benjamin once more free,
ceased not to exhort the people as before, and to set the light
of the holy Gospel on the candlestick. When this had continued
for about the space of one year after his liberation from
prison, new complaints were brought against him before the
King, who had him brought before him, and commanded him to
renounce the God whom he served, on pain of bodily punishment.
Then Benjamin asked the King, "What punishment, beloved King,
does he deserve, who deserts and renounces thee and thy</p>

</div><div id="201"> <br />
 

<p>government, and submits himself to, and serves another
lord?" The King answered, "Such a man deserves punishment on
body and property, yea, the severest penalty of death, "
Benjamin asked again saying, "What punishment does the man
deserve who forsakes his God, the Creator of all things in
order to exalt one of his servants as God, and to give to a
creature the worship due to God alone?"</p>

<p>These words so incensed the King, that he commanded his
guards to sharpen twenty reeds and to thrust them between the
flesh and the nails of his fingers and toes. But when the King
saw that the pious martyr endured all this with steadfastness,
yea, regarded it but very little, he, after other torments,
ordered the executioners to prepare a knotty stick, which by
cutting away the branches, was made as sharp as a stick of
thorns. This he caused to be thrust into the nether part of his
body, and then pulled backwards and forwards, until the
faithful servant and professor of Christ ended his life under
the hands of the executioners, like a defenseless lamb that is
led to the slaughter and opens not its mouth. Compare the
account of <i>Abr. Mellinus, 2d book, fol. 260, col. 1, 2,</i>
taken from <i>Theod., lib. 5, pag. 38, and Merul, Graec.,</i>
with the annotation of P. J. <i>Twisck, Chron., 5th book, page
191,</i> col. 1, from <i>Hist. Eccl. Tripart, 2d part, lib. 11,
cap. 33, Hist. Andr. Hondorff, fol. 20.</i></p>

<h2>THE CRUELTY OF THE ARIAN KING, HONORICUS, ALSO CALLED HUNNERICUS, THE SECOND KING OF THE VANDALS, TOWARD SOME BISHOPS AND ELDERS WHO WOULD NOT SWEAR, AND OTHER CRUELTIES, A. D. 477</h2> 

<p>A. D. 477, Honoricus, King of the Vandals, an adherent of
the Arian sect, arose with great violence against those who
would not assent to his views, cruelly persecuting, and
lamentably maltreating them. He had honorable women and maidens
suspended naked; their bodies burned with torches; their
breasts and arms cut off; hot pitch applied to their back,
breasts and sides; he also caused them to be drawn up, and
heavy stones tied to their feet, etc.</p>

<p>When he proposed to many that they should swear an oath,
some thought it not contrary to God, but the bishops and elders
of the church of Christ</p>

</div><div id="202"> 

<p>would not swear, saying that it was prohibited in the
Gospel, since Christ says, "Swear not." Thereupon they were
martyred, or at least severely punished. Those, however, who
had been prevailed upon to swear, did not escape free, for,
according to ancient writers, he punished both alike; these,
because they had sworn contrary to the command of the Gospel,
and those, because they refused to swear.</p>

<p>In the meantime, the distress and misery were so great that
scarcely a house could be found that was not filled with
wailing and lamentations.</p>

<p>After this terrible tyrant had put to death, by these and
similar torments, as well as exiled, a countless number, God,
after many plagues had been sent upon that country, awfully
punished him: worms and lice so gnawed his flesh that his whole
body became putrefied, one member, dropping off after another,
so that he was buried piecemeal, thus coming to a horrible and
not less ignominious end-the evident vengeance of God for his
tyranny against the Christians. Compare P. J. <i>Twisck,
Chron., 5th book, pag. 166, col. 2,</i> with <i>Chron.
Carionis, lib. 3, fol. 29. Eccl. Caspar Hedio 3d part, lib. 2,
cap. 18-21, 25, 27, Chronol. Leonh. Krantz., lib. 3, fol. 87,
89. Paul. Merula,</i> fol. <i>381, 382. Hist. Andr., fol. 180.
Jan. Crespin, fol. 139.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-It is stated that about this time, until the year
<i>495,</i> and afterwards, there were made in different
councils held in Africa, five hundred and five laws (called
canons or rules), in which among other things it was resolved
by the Roman church</p>

<p>1."That the children of the Donatists, (namely those
Donatists who had renounced the doctrine of Donatus) shall not
be rebaptized." <i>2.</i> "That those who say that a child is
not to be baptized for the forgiveness of sins, etc., are
excommunicated." <i>3. Act. 23.</i> "That the agitation about
baptism should be suppressed by military force." <i>Seb.
Franck, Chron. der Roomsche Concilien, fol. 48, col. 2-4,
etc.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-From the third article it appears: 1. That at[this
time there were people who stirred up agitation about baptism,
that is, infant baptism, for this was now practiced by the
Roman church. <i>2.</i> That these people were suppressed by
military assistance or force. What views, besides this article,
these people held, or in which manner they were suppressed, we
have not been able to ascertain; hence we let this suffice.</p>

<h2>THE BLOODY OPPRESSION OF THE BELIEVERS, WHICH IT APPEARS, OCCURRED IN THE TIME OF THE TEACHER, FULGENTIUS, A. D. <i>498</i></h2> 

<p>It appears that at this time the persecution and
martyrization of those who were baptized according to the
ordinance of Christ was still in progress; of which the
God-fearing teacher Fulgentius makes mention to his
contemporaries. <i>Bapt. Hist., 2d</i> part, <i>page 464, num.
12,</i> from D. <i>Vicec., lib. 3, cap. 3, from Fulgentius,
lib. de fide ad petrum, cap. 30.</i> "Rest assured of this," he
writes,"and doubt not that those who, for the name of Christ
are baptized in their blood, without which no man shall receive
eternal life, that is, who has not previously been converted
from his sins through repentance and faith, and redeemed
through the sacrament of faith and repentance, that is, through
baptism."</p>

<p>When Fulgentius here speaks of those who, for the name of
Christ are baptized in the blood, etc., he plainly indicates
thereby, that blood was shed then inasmuch as people were
baptized with it as it were, that is, such people as he speaks
of further on, namely,"who are converted through repentance and
faith, and redeemed through the sacrament of faith and
repentance, that is, through baptism," etc.</p>

<p>However, if to any one the above words of Fulgentius appear
rather too obscure for the purpose in view, we leave him to the
free and unrestrained enjoyment of his own judgment.</p>

<p>NOTE.-At this time, namely about the close of this century,
those who opposed infant baptism were so hated by the Roman
church, that in a certain council of Carthage, two persons,
whose names we for certain reasons omit, were condemned,
because they had denied infant baptism. <i>Bapt. Hist. 2d part,
page 436,</i> taken from the <i>9th chapter van de Doop
gerbruyken der Roomsche Kerke,</i> fol. <i>460.</i></p>

<p>As to the persons themselves that were condemned, we commit
them to God, since our only aim is to show how exceedingly the
aforementioned doctrines were hated, and those, who defended
them, oppressed, yea, condemned at that time. With this we
conclude our account of the martyrs of the fifth
century.</p><br />

<br />

<h1>AN ACCOUNT OF THE HOLY BAPTISM OF THE MARTYRS IN THE SIXTH CENTURY</h1>

<h2>SUMMARY OF BAPTISM IN THE SIXTH CENTURY</h2> 

<p>[Shortly after the beginning of this account, Alcimus is
introduced who declares that baptism was prefigured in the
suffering of Christ; his testimony, however, in regard to this,
is reserved for another place.</p>

<p>Cassiodorus follows Alcimus, saying that in baptism
believers are regenerated to new creatures.</p>

<p>He is followed by Fortunatus, who speaks of the virtue and
benefit of baptism, saying that those who are regenerated by
baptism, become children of God.</p>

<p>People who indicate that infant baptism is not in accordance
with the holy Scriptures.</p>

<p>The council of Ilerda, in Spain, establishes various canons
or rules against the Anabaptists and those baptized by them;
forbidding to eat with them.</p>

<p>The council of Agathe decrees that all Jews who desire
baptism must first be instructed for eight</p>

</div><div id="203"> 

<p>months, with the catechumens. Confession of faith preached
to those desiring baptism (see margin as well as column).</p>

<p>In the first council of Constantinople it is decreed that
the Eunomians and Montanists must first walk for a considerable
length of time with the church (brotherhood), hear the holy
Scriptures, and shall then, if found faithful, be baptized.</p>

<p>Of certain persons termed fanatics, who prevailed upon the
imperial councilors, to abolish infant baptism.</p>

<p>Justus Origelitanus says excellent things with regard to the
nature and efficacy of baptism.</p>

<p>One Peter, and his companion Zoroaras defend Anabaptism.</p>

<p>An account, from Gregory, of certain Jews, some of whom were
baptized on Easter, others on Whitsuntide, after previous
instruction.</p>

<p>Vincentius shows that it was customary to renounce, before
baptism, all pomp, and the works of Satan.</p>

<p>Of the white robes put on the newly baptized, and the gifts
it was customary to present to them.</p>

<p>How Brunechildis, the daughter of Arthanagildus, was
rebaptized.</p>

<p>Of Euthimius, who entertained some that had been baptized,
forty days; and how he admonished them.</p>

<p>Touching a certain prayer pronounced over the candidates,
containing very beautiful sentiments respecting the dignity and
benefit of baptism.</p>

<p>It is held that Theophilus Alexandrinus differs from the
Roman church, in regard to holy baptism and the holy
Supper.</p>

<p>The followers of Donatus again cited, and excused in various
things.</p>

<p>Christian novices, before baptism, divided in two
classes.</p>

<p>Statements with regard to the corruption of the writings of
the ancients; yet that on the subject of baptism authentic
testimonies still remain. With this we have abbreviated and
concluded this century.]</p>

<p>Although in the sixth century, Roman darkness, as regards
the corruption of divine worship, began to rise more and more,
and the divine and evangelical truth necessarily had to sink
out of sight at times, inasmuch as the Roman Bishop and others,
who held with him, began, as it were, with the black smoke of
manifold superstitions, shamefully and lamentably to darken the
bright and transparent commands of Christ, as baptism, the holy
Supper, the command not to swear, and others; so that baptism
on faith was converted into infant baptism, the Lord's Supper
into a superstitious mass, the command not to swear, into a
permission to swear, and other articles also greatly corrupted;
yet in the meantime nevertheless, there were people, yea,
eminent persons, and even such, at times, as (living in quiet
as .they did) were reckoned to belong to the Roman church,
through whom the aforesaid darkness was illuminated, the
superstitions removed, and the pure truth of the holy Gospel
brought to light as a brightly shining sun; inasmuch as they,
opposing infant baptism, recommended baptism upon faith;
abolishing the mass or transubstantiation, taught the simple
Supper of Jesus Christ; rejecting, according to the doctrine of
Christ and James, oaths and swearing, commanded the people not
to use oaths, or to swear at all.</p>

<p>But it would require too much time to treat on, and show,
all these things; hence we shall follow the custom we adopted
in the beginning, and speak principally of baptism, showing
briefly, by whom and in what manner the same was practiced
according to the rule of Christ and the usage of His apostles,
and confirmed by doctrine or example.</p>

<p>Alcimus writes <i>(lib. 1, de Orig. Mundi)</i> in the <i>6th
Cent. Magdeburg., fol. 112,</i> concerning the doctrine of
baptism, "That baptism is prefigured in the suffering of
Christ." Thereupon follows a certain verse from Alcimus, in
which baptism is compared to the water which flowed from
Christ's side, and to the blood of the martyrs; of which,
however, we will not speak further at present, as we intend to
reserve it for a place where it will be more to the purpose.
Jacob Mehrning also notices this verse in <i>Bapt. Hist., page
467.</i></p>

<p>A. D. 508.-Or at the time of the Emperor Anastasius,
surnamed Flavius Valerius, the highly enlightened and gifted
Cassiodorus, is stated to have lived and written, who says with
regard to baptism (on <i>Cant., cap. 7)</i> "that it is a divine
fountain, in which believers are regenerated to new creatures."
J. M., <i>Bapt. Hist., page 467.</i></p>

<p>What else is this, than what our Saviour Himself says (Mark
<i>16:16),</i> that believers must be baptized; and (John 3:5)
, that one must be born again of water and of the Spirit; which
accords with the words of Paul (Tit. 3:5), where he calls
baptism the washing of regeneration, because, believers, when
they are baptized, must forsake the old life, and be
regenerated into a new life. Rom. <i>6:4.</i></p>

<p>Cassiodorus, on <i>Cant., cap. 4,</i> teaches <i>(Bapt.
Hist., page 468),</i> That all believers shall (or must) be
baptized."There can be," he says,"no believer without the
washing of baptism (that is, no true believer, who can stand
before God and His Word, without baptism; for He who commanded
faith, also commanded baptism).</p>

<p>Again, in cap. 7, "No one can enter the church, who has not
previously been washed with the water of baptism, and made to
drink of the fountain of wholesome doctrine. This well agrees
with the words of the apostle, who thus testifies of himself
and of the Corinthian church, "For by one Spirit we are all
baptized into one body . . and have been all made to drink into
one Spirit" (I Cor. 12:13). By this, the apostle (like
Cassiodorus) indicates that all who are true members of the
church of Jesus Christ, must have communion in two</p>

</div><div id="204"> 

<p>things: First, they must have been made one body with each
other by baptism. Secondly, they must have been made to drink
into the Spirit, or the doctrine of the divine Word; which, as
every intelligent person knows, are things that cannot be
complied with by infants, but only by adult and intelligent
persons.</p>

<p>Cassiodorus, on Ps. 23 (page 469), says, "The water of
refreshing is the washing of baptism, in which divine gifts are
poured upon the souls that have become barren through the
withering influence of sin, that they may bring forth good
fruits."</p>

<p>Again, "The souls of the elect (or of the baptized) have, in
baptism, forsaken the corruption of the old man, and are
renewed in Christ."</p>

<p>Again, "As the people (of Israel) were preserved by the Red
Sea, in which Pharaoh perished, even so, the church of the
heathen, has been redeemed, through baptism, from the bondage
of the devil, and brought into the true promised land, the
liberty of the Gospel; and thus she (that is the church of the
heathen) who was formerly a handmaid of iniquity, has now
become the friend of Christ, and been washed, through baptism,
from the filth of sin."</p>

<p>Beloved reader, attentively consider the last three passages
of Cassiodorus, and you shall find that they, in every
particular, indicate that the baptism of which he speaks, is
not at all infant baptism, but such a baptism as Christ
commanded to be administered upon faith; for, when he says, in
the first passage, that in (or through) the water of baptism,
divine gifts are poured upon the souls that have become barren
through the withering influence of sin, that they may bring
forth good fruits, he certainly thereby indicates that he
speaks of such candidates as had previously become barren
through the withering influence of sin, and to whom gifts were
now imparted in (or through) baptism (namely, by God, for the
strengthening of their faith), that they might bring forth good
fruits, which, as everyone knows, can be done by none but adult
and virtuous persons. By the second passage, in which he says,
that the souls of the elect (or of the baptized) have forsaken,
in baptism, the corruption of the old man, and are renewed in-
Christ, .he again indicates that the persons of whom he speaks,
had lived, before baptism, in the corruption of the old man,
wherefore it was necessary for them to forsake it in baptism,
and, by a pious life, to be renewed henceforth in Christ; but
how this applies to infants, may be judged.</p>

<p>We now come to the third passage, in which he speaks of the
passage of the people of Israel through the Red Sea. He
compares the Israelites to those who, having been converted
from heathenism, were baptized; the Red Sea, by which the
people of Israel were delivered, he compares to baptism,
through which those who had been converted from heathenism, had
obtained their redemption, according to the soul, depending on
the merits of Jesus Christ; Pharaoh, who was drowned with his
people in the Red Sea, he compares to the bondage of the devil,
from which believers are redeemed in baptism, through the grace
of the Son of God; the entrance of Israel into the land of
Canaan, he compares to the entrance of believing, baptized
Christians into the true promised landthe liberty of the
Gospel. Finally he says, in the same passage, "Thus she who was
formerly a handmaid of iniquity, has now become a friend of
Christ, and been washed from the filth of sin."</p>

<p>All these things militate so clearly against infant baptism,
and confirm baptism upon faith, according to the ordinance of
Christ, that it seems unnecessary to me, to add anything
further respecting Cassiodorus. The impartial will judge
aright.</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 515.-Or properly after Cassiodorus, is
placed, in the History of the Holy Baptism, the wise, but as it
appears, excessively accused Fortunatus; from whose writings
the author of said history adduces several passages, respecting
which he makes the following annotation in the margin, "All the
preceding commendations must be understood as referring solely
to the true baptism of Christ, which is received as he has
ordained it, and which consists in the Word, Spirit. and water,
and is obtained in (or upon) faith; and not as relating to any
self-invented infant baptism."</p>

<p>He then shows, page 468 in his account, what Fortunatus
himself writes concerning it, saying, "Of the virtue and benefit
of baptism, Fortunatus teaches (lib. 10 <i>in Expos.</i> Orat.
Dom.): Man, when regenerated by baptism, becomes a child-of
God, who previously, through transgression, belonged to his
enemy, and was lost.""Man, before baptism," he further says,"is
described as being carnal, but after baptism, as being
spiritual."</p>

<p>In a letter of the orientals to Symmachus, it is
written, "Christ our Saviour has taken away, on the cross, our
handwriting, that we might henceforward, after the washing of
regeneration (that is baptism) be no longer subject to the sins
of our wickedness."</p>

<p>These passages pertain only to adults, or at least to such
as are possessed of understanding, but in no wise to those who
have attained to neither years nor understanding; for it
certainly means something, to be regenerated by baptism, yea,
to be made a child of God, which Fortunatus, in the first
instance, so expressly confesses.</p>

<p>Touching the regeneration of water and the Spirit, Christ
did not command it to the unintelligent, but to a master of
Israel, John 3:5.; and of those who had put on Christ, through
baptism, the apostle says: that by faith they became the
children of God. Gal. 3:26, 27.</p>

<p>Thus also it is a matter of moment, to be carnal before
baptism, and spiritual after baptism, which he nevertheless
adds: For, beloved reader, what is it to be carnal, but to live
after the lusts of the flesh? This, says our author, is done
before bap</p>

</div><div id="205"> 

<p>tism; hence it is also evident that he speaks of a baptism
before .the reception of which one can live after the
flesh.</p>

<p>What, on the other hand, is it to be spiritual, but to live
after the inclination of the spirit? that is, according to the
rule which agrees with the spirit, and the Word of God; but
this, he states, is done after baptism; hence it follows that
the baptism of which he treats, is of such a nature, that he
who has received it, can live after the Spirit.</p>

<p>But how can these two things, namely, to live after the
flesh before baptism, and after the Spirit after baptism, apply
to infants, of this he that has experience may judge.</p>

<p>That which is written to Symmachus, in the letter of the
orientals, is of the same nature; for there it is said of
regenerated baptized persons that after the washing of
regeneration, that is, after baptism, they are no longer
subject to the sins of wickedness; which sufficiently indicates
that he speaks of such people as are subject, before baptism,
that is, before they are baptized, to the sins of wickedness,
but from which they are freed after baptism, through the grace
of God and a holy purpose. Certainly, infants differ widely
from this.</p>

<p>A. D. 520.-That at this time, and thence forward, there were
persons who not only taught baptism upon faith as ordained by
Christ, but who also, now and then, opposed infant baptism;
this is unanimously maintained by the well-tried Jacob
Mehrning, scholar of the holy Scriptures, and the very learned
Montanus, in these words, "Nevertheless, as truth cannot remain
suppressed, some were found, in the course of time, who,
seeing. that infant baptism did not accord with the holy
Scriptures, dared candidly confess this. Of such there were
many. A. D. 520, and from that time forward in this century,
for several years in succession, as may clearly be gathered
from the fourth canon of the council of Gerunda, in Spain, held
the afore-mentioned year, in which it was decreed concerning
catechumens, that they should be baptized on Easter and on
Whitsuntide; but in case of feebleness or sickness, also on
other days. From <i>Cent. Magdeb., Cent. 6, cap. 9, de
Synodi.</i></p>

<p>For, that those who were born of Christian parents, and had
been brought up from their youth, in the Christian religion,
were reckoned among the catechumens, is evident from the
example of Ambrose, and his brother, Satyrus, sons of the
Christian parents Symmachus and Marcellina, as may be seen in
the oration of Ambrose, on the death of Satyrus; and it is
further confirmed by the example of Theodosius, Ambrose,
Jerome, Basil, M. Augustine himself, his natural son Adeodatus,
and Alipius; who though born of Christian parents, as already
stated, were nevertheless reckoned among the catechumens, till
the day after previous instruction, they were baptized.
<i>Bapt. Hist., page 480. H. Mont. Nietigh., pages 79,
80.</i></p>

<p>Perhaps someone may think, in which of the preceding words
is infant baptism spoken against? which is nevertheless so
distinctly asserted by Jacob Mehrning and H. Montanus. We
reply, that they do not express it in formal words, but
indicate it by the circumstances which they adduce. For, when
they, in the first place, speak of the fourth canon of the
council of Gerunda, in Spain, in which it was decreed that
catechumens should be baptized on Easter and on Whitsuntide,
they thereby indicate that the baptism of new-born infants
cannot have been practiced there, because infants are born not
only on Easter and Whitsuntide, but throughout the whole year;
and in another place it is stated that not only no catechumens,
.but no one else, should be,baptized at any other time than
Easter and Whitsuntide.</p>

<p>In the second place, when they declare that by the
catechumens here spoken of, there are to be understood not only
such youths, or scholars, as were of heathen .descent, but also
those born of Christian parents, as is proved by the example of
Ambrose, Satyrus, &amp;c., it shows that many Christians, at
that time, left their children unbaptized till they, after
sufficient instruction, as was given to the catechumens, were
baptized of their own accord, on either of the two feasts,
Easter or Whitsuntide.</p>

<p>Sebastian Franck calls the catechumens, of whom the
afore-mentioned council speaks, scholars of the faith, and
relates the decree of said council, as well as the time when
the same was held, on this wise, "The council of Gerunda, held
in the seventh year of King Theodoric, passed, among nine
decrees, also this: That the catechumens, that is, the scholars
in the faith, should be baptized only on Easter and
Whitsuntide, except imminent death should require it
otherwise." <i>Chron. Rom. Conch., fol. 73, col. 1.</i></p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 525.-Or in the 15th year of Theodoric,
King of France, those of the Roman church again found
themselves in great embarrassment with regard to the so-called
Anabaptists. The matter rose to such a pitch that it was
thought well to assemble a council against them, as had been
done by Pope Felix, A. D. <i>487,</i> at Rome. Accordingly,
about A. D. 525, the second council against the Anabaptists was
convened, not at Rome, as the first, but at Ilerda, in Spain;
to which there assembled, as was usually the case, many of the
bitterest papistic bishops-in order to extirpate, or at least
check, the heresy, as.it was called-who made a number of rules
and laws, not only against the Anabaptists, but also against
those who, having separated from the Roman church, had been
rebaptized by them; of which rules, among others, the following
are noted:</p>

<p><i>Canon 9.</i> Concerning those who through transgression
have been rebaptized, and have fallen without necessity, it is
our will, that the statutes of the Nicene synod be observed
respecting them, which are considered to have been passed for
such offenders: that they shall pray for seven years</p>

<p><i>Page205</i></p>

<p>among the catechumens, and two years among the cathollcs,
and then," &amp;c.</p>

<p><i>Canon</i> 14."Godly believers shall'not-eat with the
rebaptized." <i>Bapt. Hist., pages</i> 477, 478, from the 6th
<i>Cent. Magd., cap. 9, fol.</i> 240, <i>ex Decret. Synod,
Ilerdensis.</i></p>

<p>The 13th canon of this synod, also given in the same place,
we suspect has been misquoted; however, as it does not apply
here, we leave it in its own merit.</p>

<p>That the 14th canon, however, which speaks only of the
rebaptized, concerns the so-called Anabaptists, appears from
the annotation of Sebastian Franck, of Wordens, in <i>part 3 of
his Chronijk, fol.</i> 73, col. 1, who translates this canon
thus, "The clergy and believers shall not partake of meals with
the Anabaptists."</p>

<p>From this it can be seen in what detestation, yea,
abhorrence, the so-called Anabaptists in the time past, were
held by the Romanists, inasmuch as they were not considered
worthy to eat with, even as once the Samaritans, publicans, and
sinners had been regarded by the Jews.</p>

<p>We will not investigate minutely, whether the so-called
Anabaptists of that time held the same views, in regard to
every article, with those who, at the present day, are
designated by that name; nor will we, if perhaps in some points
they did not teach aright, or were not fully enlightened,
defend, much less, praise them; it suffices us, that they,
besides other good and wholesome articles, mentioned by us in
another place, held this in common with the Anabaptists of the
present day, namely</p>

<p><i>That they did not approve of the baptism</i> which <i>by
the Romanists is administered to infants, but rejected it,
so</i> that they baptized, or, at least, baptized aright at
first, those who, having come to adult years, embraced their
faith.</p>

<p>It also is praiseworthy in them, that they, notwithstanding
the anathema of the pope and the councils, yea, regardless of
persecution, suffering, and death, as shall be shown in the
proper place, maintained and manfully defended their views. We
know of nothing further that we could say of them, from
authentic writers, but will commend them, as well as ourselves,
to God and His grace. As regards the manner in which, they were
proceeded against, in subsequent times, as well as how they
conducted themselves herein, we shall show in the proper time
and place.</p>

<p><i>About A.</i> D. 530.-D. Joseph Vicecomes, in his treatise
records <i>(Bapt. Hist.,</i> page 482), the following
testimonies from the sixth century.</p>

<p>Of the decree of the Christians, at Agathe, about A. D. 530,
he says, <i>lib.</i> 3, cap. 1, "The council of Agathe,
<i>cap.</i> 13, says: It is the will of all the church, that on
the eighth day before Easter, the confession of faith be
preached publicly in the church to those desiring
baptism."*</p>

<br /><cite>* Touching the Jews who embraced the faith, this
rule was established, "A Jew shall be tried for eight months
among the scholars of the faith, and then, if he assents to it,
be baptized."Seb. Franck, Chron., Rom. Cone, fol. 72, col. 3.
We do not especially favor the decrees of councils; yet, when
-they agree with the Word of God, we accept them, not because
men have uttered them,- but because they have been pronounced
already in the Word of God. Thus, when it is said of all the
churches which existed at that time, that it was their will
that the confession of faitb should be publicly preached on the
eighth day before Easter; and also that it was added, how and
to whom it was to be preached, namely, before those desiring
baptism, we find not only that it well accords with the Word of
God, Mark 16:15, 16, but, moreover, that not only a few
individuals, but all the churches, namely, those which
dissented from the church of Rome, held that view, namely, to
baptize after previous instruction.</cite> 

<p>In the second place, when it is said here that the
confession of faith should be preached to those desiring
baptism (this is, not to infants), it clearly follows that the
candidates here spoken of, had themselves to desire baptism,
yea, that they themselves had to profess the confession of
faith preached to them, else there would have been no reason to
preach it to them.</p>

<p><i>Vicecomes (lib. 2, cap. 2, page</i> 483), quotes the
following words from the 7th <i>chapter of the first council of
Constantinople:</i> "As many of the Eunomians and Montanists as
desire to embrace the faith, we receive, as we do the Grecians;
on the first day we instruct them in Christianity, on the
second day we receive them as disciples, and on the third day
we bless them (or require them to renounce Satan); and thus we
instruct them, taking care that they walk in the church for a
considerable time, and hear the holy Scriptures, and then, and
not before, if they are found upright, we baptize them.</p>

<p>This first council of Constantinople is placed, according to
the order of D. I. <i>Vicecomes,</i> in <i>Bapt. Hist.,</i>
immediately after the council of Agathe, held about A. D. 530;
and although we have long searched for it, we have not been
able to ascertain the correct date of it; hence we make no
change in the order.</p>

<p>After this, Vicecomes places the sixth council of
Constantinople, in which several things illustrating the point
we have in view respecting baptism upon faith are presented;
but since we find from other writers, that said council was not
held in this century, but many years after, Vicecomes having
greatly erred in this, we will not proceed further with it
here, but reserve our account of it for the proper time and
place. We therefore turn to what is quoted in the <i>7th
chapter</i> of the <i>first council of Constantinople,</i>
where it is said in regard to those of the Eunomians and
Montanists who should desire to unite with that church, that
they should not be baptized until they had been instructed one,
two, or three days, yea, had walked for a considerable time in
the church, and heard the holy Scriptures.</p>

<p>Take this matter, as you may, and it indicates that the
Constantinopolitan teachers recognized no</p>

</div><div id="207"> 

<p>other baptism than that administered in their own church,
namely, after previous instruction; notwithstanding the
Eunomians and Montanists might have alleged that they had been
baptized in their infancy; yet this was regarded as useless and
of no value.</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 538.-It is recorded that at the time of
Justin and Justinian, the Roman Emperors, there were people,
termed fanatics by their opponents, who brought over to them
and persuaded the imperial councilors and ministers, that
infant baptism should be abolished; against which the
afore-mentioned Emperors set themselves to prevent it.
Concerning this, Jacob <i>Mehrning,</i> in <i>Bacent;t. Hist.,
page</i> 487, says, "M. <i>Ruliehius, page</i> 249, from whom M.
Glaneus quotes this, acknowledges <i>(page</i> 627) that at
that time there came forth many strange fanatics (he calls them
fanatics, though they were far more pious teachers and
Christians than Rulichius and Glaneus, and reproved, from the
ordinance of the baptism of Christ, the encroaching abuses of
infant baptism) who prevailed on and persuaded the imperial
councilors and ministers, that infant baptism should be
abolished. But Justin, and other Emperors would prevent the
same by their authority and interdiction."</p>

<p>He then relates, from the constitutions [laws] of the
Emperors, Justin and Justinian, in what the interdiction, or,
at least, the decree, ordained by these Emperors respecting
this matter, consisted; from which it can be seen, that not
only was infant baptism rejected and condemned by those
contemptuously called fanatics, but that even by the adherents
of the Roman church it was not looked upon as a command, but
merely as a matter which was permitted; though at other times
again, through the decrees of popes and councils, it
exceedingly prevailed.</p>

<p>In the meantime, it is gratifying to us, that even our
opponents, who were strenuous advocates of infant baptism, I
mean M. Rulichius and M. Glaneus, confess that also at that
time (about A. D. 538), there were persons who sought to
abolish infant baptism; from which it appears that the troth of
baptism upon faith could not be suppressed to such an extent
that it did not, according to opportunity, manage to raise its
head; and that, on the other hand, the error of infant baptism
did not triumph to such a degree that it did not have its
opponents when opportunity offered. Thus blooms the rose among
thorns, Cant. 2:2. God remains faithful to His promises, Ps.
33:4. Christ is with His church even unto the end of the world,
Matt. 28:20.</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 542. <i>Justus Origelitanus</i> says (in
<i>Cant., Bapt. Hist., page 469), "They</i> that are baptized in
the name of Christ, are filled with the Holy Ghost." Doubtless,
this has reference to Acts 3:37, 38, where Peter says to those
who inquired what they must do to be saved, "Repent, and be
baptized every one of you, in the name of Jesus Christ . . .
and ye shall receive the gift of the Holy Ghost;" which
certainly was not spoken to infants.</p>

<p>Again, "The fair church of Christ," says Justus,"is cleansed
by the washing of water (that is, by baptism)."</p>

<p>Thus also Paul speaks, Eph. 5:26, saying that Christ has
cleansed His church with"the washing of water by the word;"
whereby he indicates that the believers of whom he speaks were
cleansed not only with the washing of water (that is, baptism),
but also by the Word, that is, the doctrine of the Gospel; upon
which passages Justus has based his declaration, though he, for
the sake of being brief, it seems, is silent about the
Word.</p>

<p>Again, "They have ascended," he says,"from the washing of
water, when they, having received the forgiveness of sins by
baptism, have increased in:Christ."</p>

<p>His speaking here of ascending, that is, climbing up from,
the washing of water, and of increasing in Christ, clearly
shows that he does not speak of infants, but of persons who
have the ability to climb up from the washing of water, and to
increase in Christ, which is peculiar to believers only.</p>

<p>He then gives some additional testimony, in the same place,
corroborative of the point we have in view; but as it is
expressed in almost the same language as that quoted above, we
pass it by, so as not to repeat the matter.</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 545.-Or immediately after Justus
Origelitanus, Olympiodorus is placed, who speaking of baptism,
says, "The spiritual birth, which is effected by the washing of
regeneration, resembles the death (of Christ) in that those who
are regenerated, in this divine washing, are buried with Christ
in Baptism." <i>Bapt. Hist.,</i> 469, from Olym<i>piodor., in
Eccles., cap.</i> 3.*</p>

<p>Certainly, this is clearly following, though in other words,
that which the apostle presents to the consideration of the
believing Romans (Rom. 6:3), where he asks them whether they
knew not that they all who were baptized into Jesus Christ,
were baptized into His death; that like as Christ was raised up
from the dead by the glory of the Father, even so they also
should walk in newness of life. We need not say anything
further in regard to this, since the matter as to what persons
and what baptism are here spoken of, is selfevident.</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 548.-Or 550, it is related, that one
Peter, as well as one Zoroaras, defended Anabaptism; but as to
how and in what manner it was done, whether they rejected
infant baptism, or whether they recognized no other baptism
than that upon faith and administered in their own church, or
otherwise, of this I find no other account than that recorded
in <i>Bapt. Hist.,</i> Page 472,</p>

<br /><cite>* Olympiodorus (in Eccles., cap. 9),
says, "Through the washing of regeneration white robes are also
given us, which doubtless remain clean as long as we refrain
from the evil of sin."-Bapt. Hist., page 474.</cite> 

</div><div id="208"> 

<p>from Nicephorus, where it is said, "Nicephorus writes
<i>(lib.</i> 17, <i>cap.</i> 9): Peter, Bishop of Apamea in
Spain, and Zoroaras, a Syrian monk, defended Anabaptism."*</p>

<p>But if these men have erred in other respects perhaps, which
in that dark age could very easily have been the case, we would
not justify it; it suffices us that they, as regards this
article, dared oppose the common doctrine of the Roman church;
which could not have been done without peril of life, or, at
least, not without reaping calumny and obloquy.</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 551.-That it was customary at this time,
tQ baptize -on Easter and Whitsuntide, is recorded from
Gregory, who says that several Jews were baptized on Easter,
and several on Whitsuntide. <i>Bapt. Hist., page</i> 472, from
<i>Gregor., lib.</i> 5, <i>Hist. cap. 11.</i></p>

<p>That this custom of baptizing on Easter and Whitsuntide,
.pertained only to believing penitents, and in no wise to
children, we have previously sufficiently shown;. to which we
refer the reader. But to remove all doubt, mention is also made
in the same place, in the <i>History of Holy Baptism,-</i> of
the preaching or doctrine of faith which it was then customary
to present to the novices, who were to be baptized. As an
example of this is adduced the wife of Sigibert, who, having
been rightly instructed in the faith through such holy
preaching, was ultimately baptized. <i>Bapt. Hist., page</i>
472, from <i>Greg. Turon., lib. 4, cap.</i> 26.</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 553.-When, as it appears, the good old
custom of renouncing.and forsaking Satan, which was wont to be
done publicly at baptism, in connection with the confession of
faith, began to cease, or, at least, fall into neglect, it was
revived and again brought to remembrance, by the teacher
Vincent;** concerning which the following observation is found
in <i>Bapt. Hist., page</i> 473, from <i>hinc., lib. 21,</i>
cap. 6, "It was the custom, to renounce (that is, forsake),
before baptism, all pomp and the works of the devil, which can
certainly not be done by children."</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 556.--At this time white robes were put
on the newly baptized, after baptism. Thus, Gregory Turon
<i>(lib. 5, cap.</i> 11), says-that at Avernio five hundred
Jews were baptized at once, and then went their way clothed in
white robes.</p>

<p>Gifts were also presented to the baptized; thus,
Guentheramus gave presents to Clotharius, when the latter had
been baptized. <i>Bapt. Hist., p.</i> 484, from <i>Gregor.
Turon., lib. 10, cap.</i> 27.</p>

<p>This putting on of the white robes after baptism; signified
that the newly baptized, having put off the garment of sin,
must henceforth be clothed in the clean white robe of true
righteousness and holiness; to which applies Eccl. 9:8, "Let thy
garments be always white"; and Rev. 3:4, "They shall</p>

<p>P. J. Twisck it appears, makes mention of this Peter, for
the year 586, as we have also noted for that- year.</p>

<p>fi This Vincent is to be distinguished from Vincent Victor,
who is spoken of in another place. walk in -white"; also, Rev.
19:8, "And to her was granted that she should be arrayed -in
fine linen, clean and white: for the fine linen is the
righteousness of saints."</p>

<p>As, to the giftstpresented to the newly baptized, this
indicated that God thus imparts His heavenly gifts and
blessings to them; as Peter said to those whom he exhorted to
be baptized, "And ye shall receive the gift of the Holy Ghost"
(Acts 2:38).</p>

<p>However, if it should be, that with this putting on of white
robes, and giving of presents, there was coupled any
superstition (of which, however, we are not aware), we would
not commend, but rather speak against it.. What we have in view
here, is simply this, that such ceremonies were not, and could
not be, performed with infants, inasmuch as the latter are too
weak in understanding to comprehend, as well as in ability to
perform; the same. Hence it follows, that such baptism, at that
day, was not administered to infants, but to adult,
reasonable,and believing persons.</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 560.-It is stated, from <i>Adon.
Actat.</i> 4, and <i>Turon., lib.</i> 4, <i>cap.</i> 26, that
Brunechildis, the daughter of Arthanagild, had been baptized,
probably in her, infancy, by the Arians, but that subsequently,
having been married to Sigibcrt, she was rebaptized in the name
of the Holy Trinity. This is related more fully by J. Mehrning,
in <i>Bapt.</i> Hut., p. 475. But whether Brunechildis
continued in the true footsteps of the faith, after her
rebaptism, of this we have no account; it suffices us to know
that -having been baptized, probably in infancy, by the Arians,
she was afterwards, in adult age, rebaptized, or, at least,
baptized aright, -upon confession of faith; the first baptism
having no foundation.</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 562-Joseph Vicecomes (lib. 5, <i>cap.</i>
53), quotes -Cyril Monachus, in the life of the Patriarch,
Enthymius as follows, "When he had entertained for forty days,
several persons that had been baptized, had admonished, and
diligently instructed them in godliness, and inculcated in
them, in various ways, the things necessary to their salvation,
he let them depart in peace." <i>Bapt. Hist., page 484.</i></p>

<p>In what place and manner, and under what circumstances, the
afore-mentioned persons were baptized, is not stated; hence we
must be content with what is shown,. from which we can infer
that those persons were baptized upon faith, seeing they were
yet confirmed, after baptism, in the doctrine of faith and
godliness,; and thus it follows that the custom of baptizing
upon faith was practiced at the place where this occurred.
.</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 570.-Vicecomes <i>(lib. 4, cap. 12),</i>
quotes, from. Severus Alexandrinus, a certain prayer, which it
was customary, at that time, for the teacher to pronounce over
those who were baptized, "O God! take out from them the old man,
which destroys himself through the lusts of error, and clothe
them with the new man, which is daily renewed in Thy
knowledge."</p>

</div><div id="209"> 

<p>Again (lib. 5, <i>cap.</i> 27), "O Lord God! who hast imputed
unto us redemption through Christ, and through the water, in
the Holy Ghost, hast given to these Thy servants, regeneration;
Thou, O Lord, who lovest light, confirm and uphold them in
holiness, that they, illuminated by the light of Thy grace, and
standing before Thy table, may be made worthy of Thy eternal
salvation."</p>

<p>In <i>chap.</i> 38 he relates how the candidates,
immediately after baptism, were brought to the holy Supper, and
crowned with wreaths, and how the teacher then addressed them,
exhorting them to joy and holiness of life, saying, "Dear
brethren, sing a hymn of praise unto the Son of the Lord over
all, who has crowned you with royal crowns. You have now, my
beloved, received unfading crowns from the waters of Jordan,
through the power of the Holy Ghost. Dear brethren, ye have put
on today the glory of the baptism of the heavenly Adam."</p>

<p>He finally adds the wish addressed by the teacher to God,
saying, "The holy God give you holiness with this seal wherewith
you are sealed, and mark you with the ring of a sweet-smelling
anointing, by this baptism wherewith you are baptized; may He
make you worthy of His kingdom; and crown you, instead of this
perishable crown, with the crown of righteousness and every
good work."</p>

<p>Having quoted this much, Jacob Mehrning says, "All this is
utterly inapplicable to infant baptism." <i>Bapt. Hist.,
page</i> 486.</p>

<p><i>Same year as above.-It is</i> stated that about this time
there also lived Theophilus Alexandrinus, who, it appears, held
views entirely different from those of the Roman church, with
regard to baptism as well as to the holy Supper; so that he
wrote against the manifold adjurations which were wont to be
connected with the consecrating of the baptismal water, as also
against transubstantiation or the essential change of the bread
into the body of Christ, as follows, "A false Christian (namely,
one who deems adjurations over the baptismal water necessary),
does not consider that the water, in holy baptism, is
sanctified by the Word of God (which was wont to be spoken to
the candidates who confessed the faith), and the advent of the
Holy Ghost; and that the bread of the Lord, by which the body
of our Saviour is signified, and which we break for our
sanctification, is consecrated through invocation of the Lord."
Observe, he does not say, <i>transubstantiated,</i> but
<i>consecrated.*</i> See <i>Bapt. Hist., page</i> 486, from D.
J. <i>hicecomes, lib. 1,</i> carp. 14.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 586.-Long since, namely, for the year 317, we
cited Donatus, and showed, according to Seb. Franck, <i>Chron.
Roan. Kill., letter D.,</i> that he was a very learned Bishop
of Carthage, a native of Numidia,.and that he taught that the
pope and his adherents did not have a Christian church,
and,</p>

<p>' What he says about the water of baptism, is somewhat
obscure, and hence every one may judge for himsel; but that
which he remarks about the bread of the Supper, is clearer.
consequently, no true baptism; and hence held that those who
had been baptized in the Roman church, needed to be rebaptized,
saying that there was only one church, one baptism, one faith,
one Gospel, and that no children should be baptized, but only
believing adults who desired baptism. At first almost all
Africa adhered to him. See the place indicated above.</p>

<p>This doctrine, however, did not die with him, seeing mention
is made of his followers much later (namely A. D. 586), that
they at that time, under the leadership of one Peter, Bishop of
Apamia, rebaptized those who had been baptized by the orthodox
(or Catholic) church. See concerning this, P. J. Twisck,
<i>Chron.,</i> 6th <i>book, page 201,</i> col. 1, from <i>Greg.
lib.</i> 8, <i>Merul., fol.</i> 446. Also our account for the
year 548.</p>

<p>NOTE.-The followers of Donatus, of whom we speak here, have
of old been severely accused by their opponents of gross
errors, tyranny, &amp;c., but are acquitted thereof by other
celebrated authors. Nevertheless, we would not accept them in
every respect, but only in those of their teachings which are
good and true.</p>

<p>H. Bullinger compares them throughout to the Anabaptists, or
as he calls them Baptists, saying, "Here our Baptists again disclose their ignorance, when they
teach that no one should be compelled to that which is good, or
to the faith;" and, continuing, he says, "They resemble the
ancient Baptists, the Donatists, in every respect.""These," he
writes further,"were of the opinion, that heretics should be
allowed to live without restraint and with impunity in their
faith;" that is, without persecution or blood shedding. They
were opposed by Augustine. <i>H. Bulling., lib.</i> 5, fol.
216, 222.*</p>

<p>As to the accusations formerly brought against their faith
as well as their life, these have been refuted by several
prominent authors."It would be desirable," writes P. J.
Twisck,"if we ourselves had their writings, doctrines, and
deeds; for, if it is true, that they resemble the Baptists in
every respect, and are not willing that any one should be
compelled in matters of faith." It is therefore sufficiently,
as Bullinger says, evident, that they were unjustly accused.
<i>Chron., 5th book, page 147,</i> col. 2. This is more fully
spoken of in the account for the year 317.</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 600.-We will now bring the history of
baptism in the sixth century to a close. We would adduce more
writers in confirmation of said matter, but we fear that many
authors of that time did not write faithfully and uprightly;
besides, that many of their decendants, in order to give color
to infant baptism and similar doctrines, appear to have
corrupted their writings, of which many excellent men have
complained.</p>

<p>Jacob Mehrning, in his <i>Indachtigmaeckinge over het
Doopsel,</i> of the 6th century, says, "Thus the Centuriatores
Magdeburgenses, also the two doc-</p>

<br /><cite>* The writings of Bullinger against the said
people are more fully explained elsewhere.</cite> 

</div><div id="210"> 

<p>tors, Calixtus and Brandanus Detrius, in their disputations
about baptism, must themselves confess that in this century,
and much longer, the Christian novices were divided into two
classes, as in the primitive church, which observed a
distinction between the catechumens and believing applicants
for baptism, or the"elect," as they were called by the
ancients.</p>

<p>But continuing, he writes the following concerning the
corruption of the writings of the true teachers, "Here must also
be taken into consideration, that which the <i>Centuriatores
Magdebtcrgenses,</i> Dr. Calixtus, Dr. Meysner, Dr. Johan
Gerhard, Dr. Guil. Perkins, in <i>Ementito Catholicismo,</i>
and many others so frequently complain of, namely, that the
writings of the fathers and the primitive teachers of the
church, have been so amazingly abused, in manifold ways,
corrupted, interpolated and mutilated. Pray, who indeed will be
our surety, that Augustine and others of the fathers have
written and taught about infant baptism, all that is ascribed
to them.</p>

<p>However, the fathers and teachers of the church, whose
writings are extant; constitute but a very small part of the
whole number. Were the writings, books and testimonies of the
countless hundreds and thousands of other teachers of the
church, bishops, and laymen experienced in the Word of God, who
have written, preached, taught, and spoken against it, in
various parts of the wide world, to come to light, and could we
also have the original manuscripts of the fathers, namely,
those who have written against infant baptism, and compare them
together, we would be astonished to see how faithfully the
truth has been maintained in all ages, but also, how it has
been suppressed by the innovators of baptism (that is, those
who baptized infants). Yet, however mutilated and corrupted the
writings of the fathers as we now have them, are, there are
nevertheless to be found in them many very excellent
testimonies respecting Christ's true ordinance of baptism, and
very confused ones as regards infant baptism; for which we owe
special thanks to God, and to Him only, who thereby mightily
confirms us in the truth. <i>Bapt. Hist., Zd part, pages 481,
482.</i></p>

<p>Thus, not we, but those who have unfaithfully dealt with the
writings of the fathers, are the cause that we must here close
our account of the baptism of this time; however, in some of
the following centuries, where we meet with more authentic
writers, we shall be able to explain and amplify this more
conclusively.</p>

 
   <h1>AN ACCOUNT OF THOSE WHO SUFFERED IN THE SIXTH CENTURY: SUMMARY OF THE MARTYRS OF THE SIXTH CENTURY</h1>

<p>[The verse of Alcimus, reserved in the preceding account of
baptism in this century, is now ad duced, as the first proof of
the martyrization of this time, and circumstantially
explained.</p>

<p>Mention is made of various severe persecutions that occurred
about this time, of which fifteen are enumerated; it is also
shown in what kingdoms, principalities, or countries they took
place, as well as who the tyrants were by whom all this was
committed against the Christian believers.</p>

<p>An explanation that it is hardly credible that all the
countries in which the afore-mentioned fifteen persecutions
occurred, were subject to the Roman See; which is amplified,
and its signification shown.</p>

<p>Arnold, a teacher of the Gospel, martyred in a forest, in
France, and buried by his wife, presented as a pious martyr in
the year <i>511.</i></p>

<p>In the margin (in connection with Arnold) a severe
persecution in Arabia, A. D. <i>520,</i> is spoken of; what
inference may be drawn from it.</p>

<p>The oppression of the church and the servants of God, under
Granus, son of the King of France, is noticed, for the year
<i>562; then,</i> in the margin, mention is made of forty
Christian peasants, who suffered under the Longobards; however,
for certain reasons, they are not absolutely accepted.</p>

<p>After this, for the year <i>566,</i> other forty persons are
mentioned, the most of whom were put to death with the sword,
because they would not commit idolatry, or forsake Christ; in
the margin an explanation is given with reference to this, and
they are recognized by us as true martyrs.</p>

<p>Golauduch, a Christian woman of Persia, put to death, by the
Persian Priests, A. D. <i>598.</i></p>

<p>Some remarks respecting the time in which Evagrius lived,
who has recorded the last mentioned instance of martyrdom.]</p>

<p>Here will be the proper place to sing, with mournful voice,
the blood-red verse of Alcimus, mentioned by us on a former
occasion; as the author of the history of holy baptism places
Alcimus at the very beginning of this century, which
arrangement meets our approbation. With regard to the
oppression of the Christians of his time, he expresses, in the
German language, as a song of mourning, the following lines</p>

<p><i>Der Kriegsknecht stach in Christi Seit;</i><br />
<i>Wasser sprang dus der Wunden weit</i><br />
<i>Den hc?lkern das die Tauf bedeut;</i><br />
<i>Der Martrer Blut such so fleuszt heut.</i></p>

<p class="c8">The soldier pierced the Saviour's side</p>

<p class="c8">There gushed forth the wat'ry flood,</p>

<p class="c8">A sign* of the baptismal rite;</p>

<p class="c8">Thus flows today the martyrs' blood.</p>

<p>The question now is, what Alcimus meant to say by this
verse. He treats of two things: 1. of Baptism;</p>

<br /><cite>* The reader will please insert here,"to the
peoples," which is contained in the original, but had to be
omitted in the translation, as the metre would not alow it. The
words in question are virtually implied in the verse as
translated, by us, and we would not have deemed it necessary to
call attention to the circumstances, were it not for the fact,
that van Braght bases part of his following argument on these
very words.-Translator.</cite> 

</div><div id="211"> 

<p> 2. of Martyrdom, comparing thereto the water that
flowed from Christ's side, when a soldier had pierced it with a
spear.</p>

<p>I. of Baptism.-Of this we shall say but little, since this
subject has been sufficiently discussed in our preceding
account of baptism as practiced in this century; yet, in order
to proceed properly, and to pass by no part of said verse, we
say that the resemblance which Alcimus here finds in the blood
that flowed from Christ's side, saying that it was to the
people, or to the peoples, a sign of baptism, neither can nor
may be applied as referring to infant baptism; for not only the
sense, but even the words of the verse, would contradict this.
As to the words, he does not say that said water is <i>to
infants, a</i> sign of baptism, which he certainly must have
said, had he meant infant baptism by it; but he says that it
was <i>to the people,</i> or <i>peoples,</i> a sign of baptism,
which word (people, or peoples), in holy Scripture as well as
in secular authors, is generally understood to mean adult, or,
at least, intelligent persons, who can be taught, or to whom
something can be signified; as, for instance, Christ said to
His disciples, "Go and teach all nations, baptizing them," etc.
Matt. 28:19. Moreover, that infants are unable to understand
the signification of little things, even to say nothing of this
great mystery of baptism, is so clear that it cannot, with
truth, be controverted.</p>

<p>II. Of <i>Martyrdom.-This is</i> what we have chiefly had in
view; for he says in the last line of the afore-mentioned
verse, "Thus flows today the martyrs' blood." Certainly, here he
indicates that at the time when he wrote this, the blood of the
(believing) martyrs was shed; for this is indicated by the
word, <i>toddy,</i> which generally is understood to mean the
present <i>day;</i> but here properly signifies the present
current <i>time.</i> Moreover, as to the persons whom Alcimus
notices as martyrs, and of whom he says that their blood flowed
today, they cannot be understood to have been other than
orthodox martyrs, or, at least, such as held the same views and
doctrines with him; for the first, ancient, and true Christians
called none martyrs, but their fellow believers who had
suffered or been put to death for the faith. From this, it
would seem, has proceeded the old adage, which is still used:
<i>"Not the suffering, but the good cause from which he
suffers, makes the martyr."</i></p>

<p>Of the correct views of Alcimus, and, consequently, of those
whom he calls martyrs, especially in regard to baptism, we have
spoken before, and have also just now given some explanation
with reference to it; which must suffice for the present. The
impartial reader may decide for himself. In the meantime it
behooves us to investigate and, if possible, show when, where,
why, and how said martyrs suffered. But, not being able, on
account of the scarcity of ancient writers, to ascertain all
this, we shall content ourselves with what we do find in regard
to it, and shall therefore endeavor to follow the most faithful
and truthful records.</p>

<h2>OF VARIOUS SEVERE PERSECUTIONS INSTITUTED IN AND ABOUT THIS TIME, AGAINST THE CHRISTIANS IN MANY KINGDOMS, PRINCIPALITIES, PROVINCES, AND COUNTRIES, BY JEWS, HEATHEN, AND FALSE OR APOSTATE CHRISTIANS; OF WHICH WE SHALL BRIEFLY POINT OUT THE PRINCIPAL ONES</h2> 

<p>We have counted from Abraham Mellinus alone, besides from
many ancient. writers referred to by him, who have more fully
recorded the martyrdom of this time, fifteen persecutions in
this century, which were raised most vehemently against the
Christians, in various countries.</p>

<p>In Order to condense this as much as possible, so as not to
weary the reader, we shall not present the account of the
afore-mentioned author word for word, but extract from it the
pith and import thereof, and present it as clearly as is
possible for us to do. In the 2d <i>book</i> of the <i>History
of the Persecutions, etc.,</i> under the head;"Exposition of
Satan bound a thousand years," fol. 293, cot. 1-4, are
described, in consecutive order, among other things, the
afore-mentioned, persecutions, within the bounds of the sixth
century, namely, fronk A. D. 518 .to the .close of the century;
which we have briefly summed up thus</p>

<p>First of all, mention is made of many oppressions by the
Jews, heathen, and others; by which all Christendom was kept in
commotion, from the reign of the Emperor.Constantine the Great,
to that of Justin the Great (f ol. 293, cot. 2); however, since
said oppressions occurred before the time of Justin the Great,
that is before A. D. 518, we will leave them, as not belonging
to the number mentioned by us.</p>

<h2>OF THE PERSECUTIONS WHICH TOOK PLACE AFTER THE TIME OF JUSTIN THE GREAT, FROM A. D. 518 TO THE CLOSE OF THIS CENTURY</h2> 

<p>1. It is stated that besides the persecution instituted in
the beginning of the reign of Justin the Great, by Theodoricus,
the . Arian, against those who were called orthodox Christians,
a certain Jewish tyrant, called Dunan, in the fifth year of
Justin's reign, violently persecuted the Christians in the city
of Nagra. Fol. 293, cot. 3.</p>

<p>2. Of Amalric, King of the West Goths, in France, it is
stated that he heaped much vexation and contempt upon his own
wife, Clotildis, because she was orthodox in the Christian
faith. <i>Ibidem,</i> from Hist. Gall. <i>and Isidor., in
Chron..</i></p>

<p>3. It is declared that in the third year of Justinian the
Great, nephew of Justin the Great, a persecution against the
Christians was raised by the Samaritan Jews in Palestine.
<i>Ibidem,</i> col. 4.</p>

</div><div id="212"> 

<p>4. Afterwards there was also a short persecution of the
Christian believers, by the Vandals, in Africa.
<i>Ibid.</i></p>

<p>5. Also, the Arian persecution of the Christians, by Totila,
which is said to have taken place under Justinian, in Italy, is
mentioned by the same writer.</p>

<p>6. Besides these the persecution originated by the Jews and
Samaritans, at Cwsarea, in Palestine, was repeated in the 29th
year of the reign of Justinian. <i>See above.</i></p>

<p>7. We read that in the time of Justin II., the Christian
churches in Pers-Armenia were oppressed by Chosroe, the King of
Persia. <i>See above.</i></p>

<p>8. In the third year of said Justin, Alboin, the first King
of the Longobards, invaded Italy, having sworn to annihilate
all the blood of the Christians with the sword.
<i>Ibid.</i></p>

<p>9. At this time, also a Saracenic persecution against the
Christians was carried on, by Manucha.</p>

<p>10. After this, Chilperic, an enemy of the Christians,
exercised great cruelty towards them. Fol. 294, col. 1.</p>

<p>11. In the first year of Mauritius, Emperor of the
Cappadocians, the Persians instituted a persecution with fire
and sword, in Armenia. <i>Ibid.</i></p>

<p>12. At this time, the Longobards, throughout Italy, did not
cease to oppress the Christian believers. <i>See same
place.</i></p>

<p>13. About this time there was also a persecution in
France.</p>

<p>14. Also in Spain.</p>

<p>15. In England the heathen sought to exterminate the
Christians. For full information on the above persecutions,
read, aside from the above references, A. <i>Mell., pages</i>
293, 294 and on to p. 303.</p>

<p>NOTE.-In said fifteen persecutions that occurred in this
century, we notice that twelve different kingdoms,
principalities, and other countries, are mentioned, situated
not only in Europe, much less in Italy (which can also be
reckoned only as a single country), where the Roman Bishops
chiefly had their seat and ungodly dominion; but also, yea, for
the most part, in Asia and Africa, which were far remote from
Italy, being different parts of the world. The countries
mentioned, in consecutive order, are these: 1. Nagra, a place
or region in Arabia. 2. France. 3. Palestine. 4. Some region in
Africa. 5. Italy. 6. Cwsarea. 7. Pers-Armenia. 8. A certain
country where the Saracens persecuted the Christians. 9.
Another country, where Chilperic tyrannized. 10. Armenia. 11.
Spain. 12. England. These are the countries mentioned, besides
those that are passed over, but were also subjected to
persecution:</p>

<p>Who will believe now, thq all these countries were under the
Roman Empire? Yea, more than that, what man of ordinary
intelligence will think that they all adhered to the Roman See,
and, con sequently, that all the persons who were slain in said
fifteen persecutions, professed the Roman religion? Surely,
this does by no means appear; but the opposite is quite
evident. In the first place, because we do not find, in
reliable authors, that the authority and power of the Roman
Bishop, or Pope, was so great at this time, that not only
Europe, but also Asia and Africa, constituting the whole of the
ancient or then known world, bowed to him; which would
nevertheless have to be proved and established, for in these
three divisions of the world are situated the above-mentioned
kingdoms, principalities, and countries, and the aforementioned
persecutions occurred not only within, but also beyond their
boundaries.</p>

<p>In the second place, that at this time there were people in
different countries, who, not only in regard to baptism, but
also in other points of religion, held views entirely different
from what those of the Roman church understood and believed, is
so clearly evident from our previous account of baptism in this
century, that no reasonable person will dispute, much less be
able to refute it.</p>

<p>Hence it follows, that to all appearance, in the
above-mentioned fifteen persecutions, not a few, or, at least,
some, orthodox believers were put to death, as true martyrs;
for such have of old been paramountly subject to persecution.
We shall therefore investigate what people have at this time,
as pious witnesses of Jesus, steadfastly testified to the truth
of their Saviour by their death, and sealed it with their
blood.</p>

<h2>ARNOLD, A TEACHER OF THE GOSPEL AND THE CHRISTIAN FAITH, MARTYRED IN A FOREST NEAR PARIS, A. D. 511</h2> 

<p>It is stated that in the eleventh year of the sixth century,
a certain pious teacher, by the name of Arnold, not willing to
bury the talent given him by God, in the earth, but if
possible, to obtain some spiritual gain for Christ his Saviour,
by preaching the Gospel, exchanged his life for death in the
forests of France, and has thus been reckoned among the number
of pious martyrs. Concerning this, P. J. Twisck, among others,
notes the following, for the year 511, "When Arnold preached the
Gospel of Christ and the Christian faith in a forest in France,
near Paris, he was martyred, and was buried there by his wife."
<i>Chron., 6th book, Q.</i> 117, col. 2, from <i>Chron. Nicol.
Gillem., fol. 44.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-All the particulars mentioned respecting said Arnold,
clearly indicate the uprightness of his mind and views, as well
as how far he stood aloof from the superstitions of the Roman
church, which superstitions then had already risen very high.
The latter especially appears from various circumstances.</p>

<p>First, Because it is stated that he did not preach the
traditions and legends of the Romanists, but the Gospel.</p>

</div><div id="212">

<p>Secondly, Because it is shown what he preached from the
Gospel, namely, Christ and the Christian faith, but nothing
about the power of the Roman bishop, or about the Roman
faith.</p>

<p>Thirdly, because it is stated, according to ancient writers,
that having been martyred for said faith, he was buried there
(where he had been put to death) by his wife; but to have a
wife the Romanists had many years before forbidden, .to
teachers and deacons, on pain of deposition. With regard to
this, the article established about the year 495, in a certain
papal council, reads as follows, "The priests, that is, those
who also preach, and deacons shall abstain from taking unto
themselves wives; if they do not observe this, they shall be
deposed from their office." <i>Seb. Franck ' Chron. Rom.
Concilen, fol.</i> 48 col. 4, from <i>Concil. Aphr.</i></p>

<p>Fourthly, because we have found, in the ancient registers,
in which the names of the principal ancient teachers and
martyrs are recorded, not the least charge laid against this
man, either of superstition, or anything else; although we
searched diligently, and had others search.</p>

<p>NOTE.-It appears that about nine years after the death of
said martyr, Arnold, namely, A. D. 520, a great persecution
arose in Arabia against the Christians; of which P. J. Twisck
writes the following, "A. D. 520, a seditious Jew, who pretended
to be the second Moses, caused an awful massacre and
persecution of the Christians, at Nagra in Arabia, in the reign
of the Emperor Justin; he slew the pious Bishop Arethas and
many thousands of Christians. <i>Chron. 6th book, page 180,
col. 1,</i> from <i>Nicephor., lib. 16, cap. 6.</i> But as we
have not been able to obtain reliable information, except that
which we have shown, concerning this Bishop Arethas, as to
whether he was a true and orthodox bishop, as well as in regard
to the many thousands of Christians who were slain with him, as
to whether they professed a good profession of faith, which we
doubt very much, we will not concern ourselves with them.
Nevertheless, it must be considered, that among so great a
number there were at least some, here and there, who died in
the true faith, seeing the same were sometimes scattered in
various countries. Of this we will let the well-meaning reader
judge ,for himself.</p>

<h2>THE OPPRESSION SUFFERED BY THE CHURCH AND THE SERVANTS OF GOD, UNDER GRANUS, THE SON OF THE KING OF FRANCE A. D. 562</h2> 

<p>That believers and the leaders of the church of God had to
suffer great oppression at this time, our beloved brother and
coworker in Christ, P. - J. Twisck, deceased, in his time,
signified to his cotemporaries with these words, "About this
time (562), the churches and the servants of God were greatly
vexed by Granus, the wicked son of the King of France."
<i>Chron. 6th book, page</i> 192, col. 1, from <i>Paul Merula,
fol.</i> 431, <i>hist. Wenc., fol.</i> 78.*</p>

<h2>ABOUT FORTY PIOUS CHRISTIANS SEIZED BY THE LONGOBARDS IN ITALY, AND MOST OF THEM PUT TO DEATH WITH THE SWORD, FOR REFUSING TO COMMIT IDOLATRY, A. D. 566</h2> 

<p>Shortly after the death of the peasants just spoken of in
the margin, as the heathen Longobards, according to their
custom, were offering to Satan the head of a he-goat, about
forty meek and pious Christians were apprehended. When their
captors, in honor of Satan, had gone round their sacrifice,
consecrated it by their sorcerous incantations and
conjurations, and had bowed their heads before it, and
worshiped it, they wanted to constrain the captive Christians
to worship with them this head of the he-goat. But most of the
Christians, preferring to die and strive for life immortal,
rather than to live and worship the idol, refused to bow their
heads, which they had always bowed in honor to God their
Creator, before a vain and, perishable creature. Thereupon, the
enemies of od and His Anointed, who had not hesitated to fight
against the Lord, and to kick against the pricks, put to death
with:the sword, all of said captive Christians who would have
no fellowship with their idolatry; and thus they (the latter),
all became blessed martyrs of Jesus Christ. Compare <i>A. Mell.
2d book,</i> 1699, <i>page</i> 299, col. 4. from <i>lib.</i> 5
<i>Dialog., cap.</i> 28.**</p>

<h2>GOLAUDUCH, A CHRISTIAN WOMAN OF PERSIA, MUCH TORTURED, AND PUT TO DEATH FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, ABOUT A. D. 598</h2> 

<p>About A. D. 598, in the time of the Emperor Mauritius,
Golauduch, a woman of Persia, who had once been an adherent of
the Persian religion, but subsequently become converted to
Christ, and, consequently, had been baptized upon her faith,
and remained steadfast in the confession of the Christian
religion, even unto death. Of this, Evagrius makes mention,
whom we take to be the same one of whom we have spoken
elsewhere, and shown that he has described and commended as
something praiseworthy, the baptism of candidates; that is of
those who were baptized upon</p>

<br /><cite>* In the following year, namely, A .D. 563,
mention is made of forty Christian peasants, whom the
Longobards seized and would constrain to eat of the food
offered to idols; but as they refused to do this, they were
beheaded together, for the faith in the only God, and His Son
Jesus Christ. Compare . J. Twisck. Chron. page 192,
from"Marianus Scotus," lib. 4, with A. Mell., 2nd book, fol.
299, col. 4, from"Gregor. Dialog.," lib. 5, cap. 27 from
trustworthy eyewitnesses. Nevertheless, we dare not count them
among the true, defenseless martyrs, since we doubt whether, at
their apprehension, they showed themselves meek.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* Concerning these martyrs, we have not found
that anything has been laid to their charge, as regards the
uprightness and steadfastness of their faith (as has been
stated respecting Arnold); nor have we discovered anything that
is at variance with the views of the Anabaptists; hence we have
accorded them a place among the faithful martyrs of Jesus
Christ.</cite> 

</div><div id="214"> 

<p>confession of faith. He writes the following of said
Golauduch, "At that time (namely, in the reign of Mauritius),
there lived among us, the godly martyrs, Golauduch, who,
having, suffered many and severe torments at the hans of the
magi or Persian priests, finally obtained the martyr's crown;
of whose life, old Stephen, Bishop of Hierapolis, has written
an account." Compare Evagn, lib. 6, cap. 19; also,
<i>Nicephor., l%b. 18, cap. 25, ex Act.</i> Sabulosis, with A.
Mell., 1619; fol. <i>301, col 1.</i></p>

<p>Abraham Mellinus and J. Mehrning, however, differ in regard
to the supposed time in which Evagrius (who, it appears, wrote
the above account of the martyrdom of Golauduch), is said to
have lived, J. Mehrning referring him to the middle of the
fifth century, while Abr. Mellinus, on the other hand, places
him almost at the close of the sixth. This difference of
chronology we leave to them, holding, nevertheless, that they
both wrote of one and the same person; who was a good historian
and well versed in ecclesiastical affairs.</p>

<p>This person, then, called Evagrius, having commended as
praiseworthy the baptism of the above mentioned candidates,
that is, of those who had previously been instructed in the
faith, afterwards, it appears, also makes mention of said
martyress Golauduch, virtually calling her his sister in the
faith, and a member of his church. For, when he says, "At that
time, there lived among us, the godly martyress Golauduch,"
what else does he mean to indicate thereby, but that said woman
belonged to, and lived in, the very church of which he was a
member, or, at least, whose doctrine he loved and cherished?
Besides, we have not found anything laid to her charge, as
regards her faith and good conversation, as has been stated of
the preceding martyrs; hence we are satisfied with regard to
her.</p><br />

<br />

<h1>AN ACCOUNT OF THE HOLY BAPTISM IN THE SEVENTH CENTURY</h1>

<h2>SUMMARY OF BAPTISM IN THE SEVENTH CENTURY</h2> 

<p>[Adrian is mentioned as the first one who, in this century,
declared himself, not so much in words as in deed, against
infant baptism; as to the manner, however, in which the
Romanists proceeded against him, shall be more fully spoken of
elsewhere.</p>

<p>The Bracerensian papists, to prevent the decline of infant
baptism, confirm it in a certain council.</p>

<p>The pious adhere to the true ordinance of the baptism of
Christ, notwithstanding the power of the pope and the decree of
the afore-mentioned council.</p>

<p>In the meantime there were baptized (that is, in adult age),
Anastasius, the Persian; Theodorus or Theodus; many hundred
Jews; some in Upper and Lower Saxony; some in England.</p>

<p>Probation or examination in the faith, was at his time
practiced by the orthodox, as did, among other's, Amandus,
Birinus, another teacher.</p>

<p>Those of the Jewish nation now became members of the
Christian church; some of whom, after confessing the faith,
asked for baptism.</p>

<p>How Zeno of Verona was wont to address the candidates;
explanation of his address.</p>

<p>The example of the Egyptian divines, who preached the
doctrine of faith, before baptism, to the candidates, is
followed by others at this time.</p>

<p>The time for baptism, which was fixed on Easter and
Whitsuntide, is ordained to everyday, on account of infant
baptism. The pope also decrees that during the mass the kiss of
peace be offered to the people, in order that the mass, which,
it appears, was esteemed but little by many, might be regarded
the more highly.</p>

<p>The believers were not turned away from their faith, by said
papal decree; nay, it appears that even some of the Roman
church declared themselves against the papal superstitions; as,
1. Isidorus, <i>2.</i> Cesarius, <i>3.</i> Adelheymius, 4.
Agatho, <i>5.</i> Julian Pomorius. In the meantime, mention is
also made of Isidorus of Spain, and what he has written on
baptism, namely of the applicants for baptism, and fellow
prayers.</p>

<p>The Christian parents, Lutgerus and Libuga, left their son
Lutgerus unbaptized, till he, having accepted the faith in
France, was baptized thereupon.</p>

<p>Finally, the difference between those of the Roman church
and those who administered baptism upon faith.</p>

<h2>Conclusion of the account for this century</h2> 

<p>Notwithstanding in this century the seat of antichrist was
exalted to its highest altitude, inasmuch as the Emperor
Phocas, A. D. 606, conferred upon the Roman Bishop the title of
Papa, that is, pope or supreme father, which name was first
assumed by Boniface III, writing, in the decrees emitted by him
to enjoin obedience, "We will, we ordain, we decree, we command,
etc.; thus I will, thus I ordain, thus I decree, thus I
command;" whereby many superstitions and human inventions were
presented to the people as the Word of God; such as image
worship, salutation of the sacrament, observance of infant
baptism as necessary to salvation, etc.; yet many pious people
not only refused to obey all these things which the pope
prescribed, but some even flatly opposed it, daring to censure,
reject, and contume, some in this and some in that respect, the
papal and Roman superstitions, as among other points, was done
with regard to infant baptism and all that pertains to it, with
which not only some of the common people, but also some eminent
and learned men were dissatisfied, so that they abandoned it
altogether, yea, indicated by words and actions, that they were
opposed to it; which became manifest even in Rome, as will be
shown in the proper place.*</p>

<br /><cite>* A.D. 605.-At this time, Gregory the Great
wrote, "If a bishop, whoever he be, is called a general bishop
(that is, pope), the whole church decays." In Regist., lib. 8,
cap. 188. Again: ' I candidly say that any one who calls
himself a general bishop, or</cite> 

</div><div id="215"> 

<p>A. D. 606.-In this very year, in which the pope was
accepted, by Phocas, as the head of the general Latin church,
the celebrated teacher and Bishop Adrian publicly opposed
infant baptism, wishing neither to baptize the children
himself, nor to have them baptized, but utterly refusing them
baptism; on account of which he was accused by Gregory the
Great, Bishop of Rome, to John, Bishop of Larissa, as appears
from a certain letter sent by Gregory to John, in which, among
other things, the following is contained, "The second article of
the accusation against Bishop Adrian is this: that he refused
baptism to infants, thus letting them die." Centur. Magd.,
Cent. 9, cap. 4, page 141, according to the account in Bapt.
Hist., page 496, and H. Mont. Nietigh., page 80.</p>

<p>It appears, indeed, that this said Adrian was criminally
punished for his views against infant baptism, and because he
let the infants die unbaptized, as is stated by the ancients,
and shall appear more fully in our account of the martyrs.*</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 610.-Infant baptism, it appears, being at this
time, held in very little esteem by many, whether in
consequence of the teaching of the above mentioned Adrian, or
for some other reason, so that it was considered useless and
not necessary to salvation, those of the Roman church publicly
opposed this sentiment, in order either to eradicate it, or, at
least, to excommunicate it by the anathema of the pope;
wherefore, A. D. 610, in the second Bracerensian Council, among
other articles, it was established, decreed, and
published, "That infants must be baptized, as necessary to their
salvation." Seb. Franck, Chron., Rom., Kett., fol. 74, cot. 2.
P. .l. Twisck, Chron., 7th book page 213, cot. 2.</p>

<p>But how the true Christians, who rightly observed Christ's
ordinance of baptism, conducted themselves with reference to
this matter, and whether they suffered any persecution on
account of it, is not clearly expressed, but, if necessary,
shall be explained more fully in its proper place.</p>

<p>About A. <i>D.</i> 620.-Although, through the authority of
the Roman Pope, who had been chosen the supreme head of the
church, and through the decree of said Bracerensian council,
infant baptism was now so firmly established, that no one who
wished to remain a member of the Roman church, dared utter a
word against it; yet, among those who loved Christ more than
the pope, and esteemed the Gospel more highly than the decrees
of popes and councils, the true faith and the true ordinances
of Christ, especially the article of baptism, were nevertheless
maintained aright; concerning which very much might be stated,
had not the books and writings of the pious been so lamentably
and tyrannously destroyed by those of the Roman church.</p>

<p>desires to be called such, is, in his exaltation, the
forerunner of antichrist." Lib. 4, Epist. 30, Sam. Velt.,
Geslacht Register, page 125.</p>

<p>A.D. 608.-Theophilactus taught at this time, that everyone
must and may read the holy Scriptures, if he would rightly
instruct his children in the words of the I,prd, On $ph, 6,
Sam. Velt., page 152, However, we are in possession of as much
testimony from authentic writers, as is necessary to establish
said matter.</p>

<p>As regards this, that baptism was at that time administered
to adult persons, by those who were opposed to the decree of
the Roman church in the matter of infant baptism, appears from
three circumstances: 1. from the time of baptizing; 2. from the
place of baptizing; 3. from the persons baptized.</p>

<p>As to the time of baptizing, Easter was expressly specified
in the Anti-idiorensian council, where it was established, in
opposition to those who baptized new-born infants everyday:
That no one should be baptized at any other time than Easter,
except in case of imminent death. In Decr. Antis.; until which
time instruction in the faith was usually given to the
candidates, as is sufficiently shown above.</p>

<p>As regards the place of baptizing, it was not in a font or
basin, but in the wilderness, here and there at the rivers,
whither, as every one can easily judge, new-born infants cannot
go; neither can they observe the manner then customary at
baptism, namely, to kneel during baptism, and go in or under
the water; of which there were many instances at this time in
warm countries. Among others, Bede (lib. 2, cap. 16),
writes, "That Paulianus baptized many persons at noon, close by
the city of Trovulsinga, in the river Trehenda."</p>

<p>This manner of baptizing, by the ancients called immersion
or submersion, has long been observed, even up to the present
time, especially by the eastern and southern nations, who
understood the Greek word bdptisma (baptism), or baptizo (to
baptize), to signify a total immersion or submersion in water;
however, it is found that, according to the idiom of the Greek
language, said words do not only signify an immersion or
submersion in, but also a washing or sprinkling with, water.
For instance, <i>baptisma, bacent;tismos, is</i> translated
sprinkling, washing, dipping, etc. See <i>Dictionar.
Tetraglott., in quo voces Latine omnes cum Graca, Gallica and
Belgiccu interpretatione. Amsterodami ex Typographic
Ravesteniana, A. D. 1634.</i></p>

<p>However, we leave the above mode of baptism to its own
merits; it suffices us to have shown that it could not be
administered to infants, and that those who were baptized after
this manner, must have been adult and intelligent persons.</p>

<p>As to the third point, namely, what <i>persons</i> were then
baptized, has been made sufficiently clear from the two
preceding circumstances of time and place; but over and above
this, we will mention some persons. At this time there was
baptized at Jerusalem, Anastasius the Persian; at
Constantinople, the celebrated Persian woman, Caesarea, with
her husband and many of her followers were baptized; in
Bavaria, Theodorus, also called Theodo or Theodus, with much
people received baptism; in Spain, many hundreds of Jews were
baptized upon faith, the number of which are reckoned by some
writers</p>

</div><div id="216"> 

<p>to have been several thousands, which number, however, in
order not to overstep the bounds of truth, we have not dared to
give or,follow; the same, occurred in Upper and Lower Saxony,
in England, and other countries, where at this time, it is
stated, countless numbers attained to the faith, and were
baptized upon it. This is stated in <i>Bapt. HisE., page
491,</i> from <i>John Magnus, Paul Diaconus, Bede, Hist.
Gath,</i> etc., which should be compared together.</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 632.-At this time, probation and
examination in the faith were practiced by the orthodox
teachers. Those who presented themselves for baptism, whether
of Jewish, heathen, or Christian parentage, were first proved
and . examined in the faith, which examination generally took
place six or seven times in the week before Easter or
Whitsuntide; to the end, that the candidates, having made a
good confession, and having been confirmed in the faith, might
be baptized at the approaching holiday. This custom is noticed
by many writers; we will, however, present only this brief
extract from <i>Bapt. Hist., page 492:</i> "The Bishop or
teacher Amandus made the son of Dagobert a catechumen, before
he baptized him." <i>Regina, lib. 1.</i> In Lower Saxony,
Birinus observed it as a rule not to baptize people before he
had catechized, that is, instructed, them. <i>Bede, lib. 4,
cap.</i> 16. Another teacher, according to Metaphrastes,
instructed a certain Jewish virgin, before he baptized her.
Vincent states of Arnulph, that he baptized (that is, after
previous instruction), a sick person, who shortly afterwards
got well. <i>Lib. 23, carp.</i> 76, by which we would not
indicate that baptism possesses any virtue to heal the body;
but that it is administered to intelligent persons; and that
upon faith, according to the ordinance of the Lord, Mark 16:15,
16.</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 646.-As the doctrine of faith in Jesus
Christ was now greatly spreading, and the believers increased
in many places, so that the church, which at times, on account
of persecution, had been wont to. hide in dens,and caverns,
began to arise here and there, as herbs spring up from the
earth in spring-time, her growth was seen to proceed not only
four those who, born of Christian parents, accepted the faith,
nor only from heathen who became converted to the faith, but
principally from the Jews, who had previously been very bitter
against the Christians, but who now came in multidudes, as
occurred not long since, to be baptized in the name of Christ,
upon faith; an example of which is given by Gregory of Turon
<i>(lib. 5" Chron. Franc., cap. 11).</i> Some Jews who desired
baptism, said with one accord to the teacher, "We believe that
Jesus is the Son of the living God, promised unto us for a
Prophet and Messiah; therefore we pray to be washed by baptism,
that we may not abide in our sins." The teacher rejoiced at
this confession, and, in the night before Whitsuntide, when it
was customary to watch and to pray, he went to the place of
baptism, situated without the city walls; where the whole
multitude fell down before him and prayed to be baptized.
<i>Bapt. Hist., page 499.</i></p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 658.-D. Joseph Vicecomes quotes from Zeno
of -Verona, a certain address which the latter was accustomed
to direct to the candidates, saying, when they were about to be
baptized, "Rejoice (beloved friends); it is true, in baptism you
are divested of your clothes, but adorned in the heavenly robe,
you shall soon ascend again, white as snow; whosoever will not
defile it, shall, inherit the kingdom of heaven." <i>Bapt.
Hist., page</i> 501, from <i>Vicecom., lib. 4, cap. 10,</i>
from Zeno's second homily on baptism.</p>

<p>All these are certainly expressions that relate to
intelligent persons, and not in the least applicable to
infants; for, when, in the first place, it is, said
here, "Rejoice," this is the opposite of sorrIow, which sorrow
the candidates previously were wont to feel on account of their
manifold sins, over which they wept and mourned; but now, being
washed in baptism, through faith and the blood of Christ, they
had reason to rejoice, even as the jailer, who, having been
baptized, rejoiced with all his house, Acts 16; and as the
Ethiopian, who, after baptism, went on his way rejoicing, Acts
8:39.</p>

<p>The putting off of the bodily clothes before baptism;and the
putting, on of the snow-white robe of righteousness in baptism,
as well as the solicitude not to defile it with sin after
baptism, referred to in the above address'to the candidates, is
no work for infants, but only for adult persons; hence, the
baptism spoken of there, is not infant baptism, but a baptism
peculiar solely to the adult and those of reasonable minds.</p>

<p><i>About A.</i> D. 670.-At this time, the holy baptismal
ordinance of Christ was still rightly observed in Egypt;
namely, the doctrines of the faith were preached to the
candidates before baptism; yea, this practice was so highly
regarded there, that some in other countries, separating from
the Roman church in this article resolved to restore the
Christian religion according to the example of the Egyptian
Christians, hence they were styled <i>beginners in the
Christian religion.</i> In allusion to this, quotation of
Vicecomes <i>(lib. 2, cap. 3),</i> from Jacob Pamelius' book on
Tertullian, is no doubt made, saying that the <i>beginners in
the Christian religion</i> (that is, those who, separating from
the Roman church, established the Christian religion upon the
original apostolical foundation), adopted</p>

<p>the practice of catechization (that is, teaching the
doctrines of the faith), before baptism from the Egyptian
divines. Bap. <i>Hist., page 501.</i></p>

<p><i>About A. D. 682.-As</i> the believers who strictly
observed the baptismal ordinance of Jesus Christ, increased in
no small degree, as can be inferred, in many countries, yea,
even in the Roman church, so that, in regard to the time when
baptism should be administered, they had, here and there,
settled on</p>

</div><div id="217"> 

<p>a fixed time; namely, that it should take place on one of
the two feasts, Easter or Whitsuntide, and that to this end,
the catechumens should previously be notified and, in the weeks
preceding said feasts, instructed in the faith; those of the
Roman church, as may easily be judged, were not well satisfied
with this, seeing it was a means to completely set aside infant
baptism; and not only this, but to abolish entirely all other
superstitions and human inventions, which, with so great labor
and costs, by councils and otherwise, had been introduced into
the Roman church, ostensibly for the best. It was therefore-in
order to prevent this, it seemsdeemed expedient to renew and
republish the import of what had previously, A. D. 610, been
decreed in the second Bracerensian council, namely, "That infants should be baptized, as necessary to their
salvation," that is, on pain of damnation. But what was really
done in this matter, is not expressed in all its particulars;
however, it has not been passed by unnoticed, seeing Pope Leo
II, according to the Roman notation, the 82d, who then occupied
the chair, ordained: That during mass the kiss of peace should
be offered to the people, and that baptism might be
administered any day. P. <i>J. Twisck, Chron., page</i> 233,
col. 1, from <i>Hist. Georg., lib. 4. Chron., S. F., fol.</i>
19.</p>

<p>From this it can be seen that the pope's principal concern
was, not to lose the mass and infant baptism, both of which
were chief points upon which rested the Roman church, as the
temple of Dagon upon two pillars, which were threatened, now by
this Samson and now by another, by the arms of the Spirit and
the Word of God, yea, were in danger of being utterly pulled
out and broken. Now, what does the pope to prevent this? As
regards the mass, he ordains that during mass the kiss of peace
should be offered to the people. But how could he more
insinuatingly and affably bind the common people to the
superstition of the mass, than by offering to them the kiss of
peace? But when the lion's skin will not reach, that of the fox
is brought into requisition.</p>

<p>As to infant baptism, what does he ordain to preserve it?
This: that baptism might be administered any day. But someone
may think: This does not concern infant baptism; consequently
the latter is not confirmed by this decree. We answer, that the
pope certainly sought to establish it thereby; for, inasmuch as
infant baptism was weakened in no small degree by the practice
of the believers who baptized their candidates only on Easter
and Whitsuntide, as already stated, there was hardly another
remedy to maintain infant baptism, than to ordain all times and
days for baptism, for thus it could be administered to new born
infants, who are born not only on Easter and Whitsuntide, but
throughout the whole year, and who, according to his view, must
then also be baptized.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 699.-The decree of Pope Leo II, for the
confirmation of infant baptism and the mass, as mentioned for
the year 682, did not have the effect of causing the believers
who had separated from the Roman church, and maintained the
baptism upon faith, to swerve in the least from their faith and
the practice of the same; on the contrary, it appears that
still more, yea, even learned men, separated from the Roman
church in this said article and joined the little flock of
Christ, so that some of them who formerly had maintained infant
baptism, the mass, the traditions, the meritoriousness of good
works, and the seven sacraments, now taught differently, and
opposed the pope in these points. Of these, five persons are
mentioned in the <i>Chronicles,</i> whom P. J. Twisck, in his
seventh book, for the year 699, notes, saying, "Isidorus,
Cesarius, Adelheymius, Agatho, and Julian Pomorius taught in
opposition to the pope concerning the holy Scriptures,
justification, good works, that there are but two sacraments,
and concerning the name of the church, which was not built upon
Peter, but on Christ." <i>Page</i> 238, col. 4, from Joh.
<i>Munst., fol.</i> 121.</p>

<p>But pre-eminently is mentioned by other writers, Isidorus of
Spain, who, having at one time been a strenuous advocate of
infant baptism, now taught and wrote such things as could, with
reason and judgment, in no wise be applied thereto. For,
commenting on John's baptism, which even our opponents admit to
have been administered only to adult, penitent sinners, he
compares it to the baptism of his own time, saying, "I hold that
all who were baptized by John unto repentance, were patterns of
the catechumens." <i>Bapt. Hist., page 498,</i> from
<i>hicecom, lib.</i> 2, <i>cap. 4,</i> from <i>Isidorus of
Spain, in lib. de Div. Oficiis.</i></p>

<p>What kind of persons these catechumens were, and how they
were instructed before baptism in the doctrine of the faith,
called the catechism, has already been sufficiently explained,
and it is not necessary to repeat it here: yet, over and above
this, we will adduce the man's own words, as I have found them
translated in <i>Bapt. Hist., page</i> 499."After the
catechumens," he says,"there is the second grade-the applicants
for baptism or fellow prayers, that is, those who are striving
for the doctrine of the faith, and sobriety of life, in order
to receive the grace of Christ in baptism, and, hence, are
called fellow prayers, that is, such as pray for the grace of
Christ." <i>Lib. 2, de Div.</i> Oficiis, <i>cap. 21.</i></p>

<p>What took place ultimately with these applicants for
baptism, in his time, he indicates with these words, "On Palm
Sunday (that is, the Sunday before Easter), the Symbolium (that
is, the twelve articles of faith) is delivered to the
applicants for baptism, on account of the approaching glorious
Easter feast, in order that they, as striving to receive the
grace of God (that is, baptism) should first learn the faith
which we confess." <i>Bap. Hist., page</i> 499, from Isid.,
<i>lib. 2, de Div.</i> 0,f., cap. 27.</p>

<p>These words, compared with the preceding ones, clearly show,
what custom as regards baptism, pre-</p>

<p><i>Page217</i></p>

<p>vailed at that time in the church of which he speaks;
namely, that the catechumens, or, at least, the novices, were
first instructed in the catechism, that is, in the doctrine of
the faith, until they were meet to be baptized; and that from
that time on, they were called applicants for baptism, and
fellow prayers, because they desired baptism and prayed for it.
This could certainly not be done by new-born infants.</p>

<p>As regards that which is noted elsewhere from Isidorus
<i>(ex lib. de summo bono ),</i> with reference to other views
on baptism which he is said to have entertained, we do not
accept it as having been written by him, and this for good
reasons, which, however, it would require too much time to
relate; unless it be said that he wrote it before he was
converted, and had obtained light on the matter; and here we
would let the matter rest.</p>

<p>A. D. 700.-We come now to the last year of this century, in
which we perceive that at that time not only those of Jewish or
heathen parentage, but also those born of Christian parents,
were instructed in the faith before they were admitted to
baptism; so that the Christians who sought the salvation of
their children, left them unbaptized, till they were able
themselves to confess their sins, profess the faith, and
thereupon desire baptism as a sign of the same. Among these,
the two pious Christians, Lutgerus and his wife Libuga, are not
considered of the least. It is stated of them, that they left
their son Lutgerus unbaptized, till he, having learned and
accepted the faith in Jesus Christ, in France, was baptized
thereupon, A. D. 700. P. J. <i>Tzerisck, Chron.,</i> 7th
<i>book, page 239,</i> col. 1, from <i>Grondig. Bezvijs.,
letter B.</i></p>

<p>We now leave this account of baptism in the seventh century;
in which, on the one side, the oppressed believers. practiced
the true ordinance of the baptism of Christ upon faith; while,
on the other side, the oppressing Roman church deviated the
longer the more from it, so that they not only forsook, but
also opposed the command of Christ <i>to baptize only upon
faith.</i></p>

<p>On the other hand, infant baptism and many other
superstitions were so firmly established, that almost no one
except those who did not fear the anathema of the pope, and
death, dared oppose these things. It is truly astonishing, what
P. J. Twisck writes, and truthfully, concerning this, in his
conclusion to the seventh century, with which we will also
conclude this, "The Pope of Rome, having been declared head of
all the churches by the Emperor Phocas, gradually established
the boundaries of his power, authority and jurisdiction, not
only in. but also beyond, Italy, yea, beyond Europe, and this
with exceeding haughtiness. The pomp and greatness became
unendurable; yea, the avarice of the clergy generally was so
great that they obtained ecclesiastical offices through
presents, in order to derive temporal gain therefrom, and would
scarcely baptize an infant, unless money was given them for
it."</p>

<p>Herewith enough has been said regarding this matter, and we
will therefore turn to the martyrs who suffered at this time
for the truth of Christ their Saviour.</p>

 

  <h1>AN ACCOUNT OF THOSE WHO SUFFERED IN THE SEVENTH CENTURY: SUMMARY OF THE MARTYRS OF THE SEVENTH CENTURY</h1>

<p>[After the oppression exercised by the heathen and Arians,
the Roman Pope also began to direct his arrows against the
orthodox Christians. This forms the beginning of our
account.</p>

<p>Bishop Adrian, of whom we have already related that he
refused baptism to infants, is now criminally punished for this
cause, A. D. 606.</p>

<p>Concerning the chapter of criminal matters, some further
observations are made; also, as to whether said Adrian really
suffered corporal or capital punishment.</p>

<p>Thereupon follows a notice concerning the following martyrs,
noted by P. J. Twisck for the years 614 and 628, and recorded
by us.</p>

<p>Many Christians apprehended by the Longobards, and put to
death, A. D. 614, because they refused to eat, in honor of the
idols, food offered to idols.</p>

<p>Of the sufferings of the Christians in Persia, and how a
great many of them were delivered from imprisonment, given for
the year 628.</p>

<p>Mention made of eight severe persecutions instituted against
Christian believers, from A. D. 622, to the close of the
century; the places where these persecutions happened, and the
names of some of the tyrants who originated them.</p>

<p>Further observations concerning said persecutions and
martyrs, which concludes the account of the martyrs of this
century.</p>

<p>When first the heathen and then the Arians, the former by
open, wicked violence, the latter by secret, tyrannical
hypocrisy, had for a long time not only scattered the flock of
Christ, but devoured with wolves' teeth, as it were, many of
its innocent and defenseless lambs, then, in this century (a
thing almost unheard of), the Roman Bishop, now called pope,
began to arise as the forerunner of antichrist, seeking to
destroy those who opposed the Roman church, not only by
anathematizing, excommunicating, and awfully threatening them,
which alone would have been sufficient to strike terror into
the heart, but, besides this, it seems, by criminal and actual
punishments, which generally touched the body or the life. Of
this we hope presently to show an example from which the rest
of his wicked deeds may be inferred.</p>

</div><div id="219"> 

<h2>ADRIAN, A CHRISTIAN BISHOP OR TEACHER, CRIMINALLY PUNISHED FOR REJECTING INFANT BAPTISM, ABOUT THE CLOSE OF THE YEAR 606</h2> 

<p>In our account of baptism for the year A. D. 606, we made
mention of the celebrated teacher and Bishop Adrian, and
stated, from a certain letter sent by Gregory the Great to
John, bishop of Larissa, that Adrian was accused of having
refused baptism to infants. But it seems it did not stop, at
said accusation, but that they, to all appearance, proceeded
further and more severely and cruelly against him; for the
above was imputed to him for a crime or a heinous sin. Hence he
was criminally proceeded against, which criminal ,punishment
sometimes related to property, but most frequently it was of a
corporal, or capital nature.</p>

<p>Moreover, though said punishment was ordained for great
crimes and criminals, yet in the case of Adrian, we can
perceive, it was founded on nothing but his disregard and
rejection of infant baptism, as appears from the sequel of
Gregory's letter to John, which reads thus, "Pursuant to the
chapter of criminal matters, a 'charge was preferred against
Bishop Adrian, or brought against him by way of punishment,
concerning the children which, by his orders, had been kept
from baptism, and died in darkness, unbaptized (or unwashed)
from the filth of sin." Compare with the account in <i>Bapt.
Hist., page 546.</i></p>

<p>If any one should object that said chapter of criminal
matters, was not comprehensive and rigorous enough, and that
therefore, Adrian was probably not really punished corporally
or with death, by virtue of the same, with such a one we do not
feel inclined to dispute. It suffices us, to have learned, on
the one hand, that this teacher Adrian, did not hesitate, even
though he should incur severe penalty, to speak against infant
baptism, yea, what is still more, to reject infants from
baptism, and to let them die unbaptized, as being under the
grace of God; and on the other hand, that those of the Roman
church were exceedingly dissatisfied with this, yea, to such a
degree, that the chapter of criminal matters was opened and,
apparently by form of sentence, set before this good man,
either to send him (after preceding excommunication) into
banishment, or to strip him of his property, or to punish him
corporally or capitally. But whether said sentence was actually
executed on him, is not clearly expressed;, hence we commit the
truth of the matter to God.</p>

<p>In the meantime, there appears what we have said before,
namely, that the pope or the Roman church did'not hesitate, not
only to anathematize, as had formerly been customary, their
opposers, especially those who spoke against infant baptism,
but to proceed against them criminally or by way of corporal
punishment. This was done with the said teacher Adrian,
concerning whose departure we have a good hope, whether he died
a natural or a violent death. The Lord knows His own, and shall
in the hereafter not leave them unrewarded, who have suffered
for testifying to His truth, and opposing error.</p>

<h2>NOTICE CONCERNING THE FOLLOWING MARTYRS NOTED BY P. J. TWISCK FOR THE YEARS 614 AND 628, AND RECORDED BY US</h2> 

<p>We have not been able to obtain certain or clear information
as regards the confession of faith of the martyred persons of
whom we shall presently speak; hence we dare not reckon them
all indiscriminately among the true and orthodox confessors of
the true faith; the more especially, as the sword of
persecution then came upon all who bore the:Christian name (as
had before, yea, frequently, been the case), in places where
such persecutions occurred. Persons were also not examined so
very closely With regard to this or that controverted point of
the faith (I speak of those who were apprehended by the
heathen), for these were things of which the persecutors knew
nothing, while it was quite different with those who fell into
.the hands of the papists mentioned above. The people were
simply asked whether they would sacrifice, to the idols,
renounce Christ, etc. Hence the reason, that in the confession
of the martyrs who suffered among the heathen, but little is
said regarding controverted matters of faith which are now
discussed among Christians; but this is discussed more fully
elsewhere:</p>

<p>The negligence of the writers of those times, the absence of
the art of printing, and the violence of persecution, which
caused people to flee and roam about, are also no small cause
why so little can be adduced concerning the confessions of the
martyrs. This has been more fully explained in our account of
baptism.</p>

<p>Therefore we hold, according to the judgment and nature of
love, that among the martyrs of whom we shall speak, there
were, if not all, at least some, who viewed the matter aright,
and whose martyrdom had for its foundation a good confession;
but to accept them altogether, or to enter deeper .and more
fully into the matter, we do not deem advisable, for:reasons
already mentioned.</p>

<p>In order, then, to present the matter in the briefest and
simplest' manner, we shall follow the account of P. J. Twisck,
as being a summary of what the ,ancients have recorded
concerning it.</p>

<h2>OF MANY CHRISTIANS WHO WERE APPREHENDED BY THE LONGOBARDS, AND PUT TO DEATH BY THEM, BECAUSE, IN HONOR OF THE IDOLS, THEY REFUSED TO EAT FOOD OFFERED TO IDOLS. A. D. 614</h2> 
<p>"The Longobards," says Twisck,"apprehended many Christians,
and sought to compel them, to eat meat which they had offered
to their idols; and when they refused, they put them to death.
They</p>

</div><div id="220"> 

<p>also put to death four hundred who would not worship their
gods." <i>Chron., page 216, col. 1.</i></p>

<p>As to what might be adduced concerning the confession of
faith of these slain persons, and how far we accept them as
martyrs, see the foregoing notice.</p>

<h2>OF THE SUFFERINGS OF THE CHRISTIANS IN PERSIA, AND HOW AFTERWARDS MANY OF THEM WERE DELIVERED FROM IMPRISONMENT, A. D. 628</h2> 

<p>Continuing in his account, the above-mentioned author
finally speaks of the year <i>628,</i> for which, in the
beginning, he records these words, "About this time, the
Christians had to suffer much also in Persia." He then relates
that the Emperor Heraclius, having come into Persia, liberated
many of the imprisoned Christians; the number, however, of
those who suffered, as well as of those who were delivered from
imprisonment, is not expressed, and hence we can add no further
explanation. <i>Chron. page 221,</i> from <i>Hist. Eccl.
Hedio., lib. 5, cap. 18</i> and <i>19.</i></p>

<p>All explanation further necessary, concerning the
imprisonment and the sufferings of said Christians in Persia.,
and how far they are recognized by us, must be looked for in
the preceding notice.</p>

<h2>OF EIGHT SEVERE PERSECUTIONS INSTITUTED AGAINST CHRISTIAN BELIEVERS, FROM A. D. <i>622</i> TO THE CLOSE OF THIS CENTURY</h2> 

<p>It behooves us to record here, that from A. D. <i>622,</i>
to the close of this century, various other persecutions and
severe oppressions were instituted against those who were
called Christian believers, among whom, to all appearance,
there were here and there, some who died upon a pure confession
of faith; of which persecutions and oppressions of the
Christian believers, among others, eight are enumerated, which
we will briefly extract from A. Mellinus. Having spoken of the
chronology of the Turks or Mohammedans, he proceeds to the year
<i>622,</i> and says</p>

<p>1."In Italy a new persecution arose against the Christians
who resided there, under the Arian King of the Longobards.</p>

<p><i>2.</i> "In France also some (namely, Christian believers)
were made martyrs.</p>

<p><i>3.</i> "Constantine, the son of Heraclius, having reigned
four months, and Heracleonas six months, Constant, the son of
Constantine, became Emperor, and reigned for twenty-seven
years. He followed in the footsteps of his grandfather
Heraclius, in espousing the cause of the Monothelites, and for
the sake of this sect carried on a severe persecution (namely,
against those Christians who held different views).</p>

<p>4."In the twenty-eight years during which said three
Emperors reigned, the Arabians or Saracens conquered many
countries and cities, and put to death a countless number of
Christians (namely, of those who lived under said reign). There
was also considerable commotion in France and England
(understand, on account of the Christian religion). He
afterwards says:</p>

<p>5."But in France, during the seventeen years of his reign
several were put to death as martyrs."</p>

<p>After this, he speaks of the persecutions which, during the
twenty-seven years comprising the reign of Justinian II, and
the time of Leontius and Tiberius Apsimarus, arose against the
Christians, through the Longobards as well as the Saracens.
Finally he says, "Also in France, <i>6.</i> in England, 7. in Germany, and in
Spain <i>8.</i> many became martyrs at this time." A. <i>Mell.,
2nd book, fol. 303, col. 1, 2.</i></p>

<p>What has been remarked concerning the martyrdom of those
slain in the years <i>614</i> and <i>628,</i> applies also to
the eight persecutions just mentioned; hence, see the
above-mentioned notice.</p>

<h2>FURTHER OBSERVATIONS TOUCHING THE ABOVE MENTIONED MARTYRS</h2> 

<p>Here we are compelled to leave our account of the martyrs of
this century, since the ancient writers have left us no further
information respecting this matter; at least we have not found
anything more that would shed light on the subject. However, it
will be sufficient for the defense of the cross-bearing church
of the Anabaptists and defenseless Christians; for, though
among the great number of martyrs that have been noticed by us
there are found but few open professors of the faith, but this
diminishes neither the respectability nor the verity of said
cross-bearing church; since already in our account of baptism
throughout this century various, yea, many, professors of said
faith have been presented, to prevent and oppose whom divers
means were frequently resorted to. See the account of baptism
for the years <i>610, 682, 699,</i> etc.</p>

<p>Moreover, it seems hardly possible that all those who were,
in such great numbers, it appears, designated Anabaptists, in
the fifth century, and against whom bloody decrees were
ordained, A. D. <i>413,</i> should all have been slain and
exterminated so that none were left remaining. This, we say,
seems hardly possible, since even in the severest persecutions
the persecuted, especially if their number is great, cannot be
spied out so closely as to make it impossible for any to
escape, or that not one or the other will be able to conceal
himself. This being the case, those remaining (for it can
scarcely be otherwise) allowed the living faith which was in
them, to manifest and work out its power, in order to implant
in the people of that age, but especially, in their children
and decendants, the belief and doctrine which they themselves
professed, and for the sake of which they had imperiled
their</p>

</div><div id="221"> 

<p>lives, escaping death however, through the grace of God.</p>

<p>It certainly appears that in the following (sixth) century
there were again people of such belief and doctrine; and not
only that, but such as to honor Christ their Saviour, did not
hesitate, as true martyrs, to pour out their blood like water.
Concerning this, both with respect to the confession and the
martyrdom, our observations on the sixth century may be
referred.</p>

<p>Is it a matter of surprise, then, that we hold it for
certain, that the seventh century also was not destitute of
persons who, having professed a good confession of faith, had
to taste death thereupon? Certainly, we have no reason to doubt
it; or the ancients must not have well instructed their
cotemporaries and descendants, or there must have been no
persecutions in this century. As regards the former, the very
nature of love will lead us to believe otherwise; while the
latter has already been sufficiently refuted, seeing we have
shown that various persecutions occurred during that time. We
will now conclude, since our object has been sufficiently
explained above; besides, many of the confessors and martyrs
noted for this century, will bear testimony to it.</p><br />

<br />

   <h1>AN ACCOUNT OF THE HOLY BAPTISM IN THE EIGHTH CENTURY: SUMMARY OF BAPTISM IN THE EIGHTH CENTURY</h1>

<p>[The example of Lutgerus (adduced in the last year of the
preceding century) is rehearsed, by way of introduction, in the
beginning of this; to which is added an account of Herinigild,
who was baptized by Leander, after previous instruction</p>

<p>Germanus, a father at Constantinople, states that it was
customary to make confession of sins before baptism.</p>

<p>Bede the presbyter treats of the baptism of the apostles; of
the baptism of the Angles who were baptized in the Rhine and
Swalbe; of the catechumens, to whom, before baptism, the
confession of faith was delivered; of four things which do not
apply to infant baptism; of Paulinus, the teacher at York, and
how he baptized Eadfrid and Offrid, the sons of Edwin; that
there can be no baptism without water and the word; that all
believers must be baptized; that the bread of the holy Supper
is a figure of the body of Christ; which latter is further
explained in the margin.</p>

<p>Amalarius Fortunatus states that the newly planted or, newly
baptized, Christians were led to the church for eight days; he
admonishes the candidates to fast for several days before
baptism; and, in the margin, it is stated that he taught
against transubstantiation, etc.</p>

<p>The views of Antharitis, who refused baptism to the infants
of the Christians, are presented.</p>

<p>Of some among the Romanists, who held that fasting, reading,
and praying must be connected with baptism; that the teachers
should first baptize the men, and then the women; what prayer
should be spoken over the men and women to be baptized; that
the baptized must kneel down and pray to God, etc.</p>

<p>Wittikind becomes a catechumen, is instructed in the faith,
and then baptized together with Albion.</p>

<p>The baptism of the son of Carloman, and of his daughter
Gisla; what we think of it.</p>

<p>Albinus requires faith at baptism, that is, that baptism
must be received with faith; he also says that with baptism
there are connected three visible and three invisible things,
of which the visible are</p>

<p>1. the body of the candidate; 2. The baptizer; 3. the water;
and the invisible are: 1. the soul; 2. faith; 3. the Spirit of
God; that baptism without the invocation of the holy Trinity is
void; that not only the creed, but also the Lord's Prayer was
said at baptism; that examination in the faith took place at
baptism; which custom, however, according to Vicecomes, was
abolished after infant baptism came into vogue; that the
factitious practices of the papists commenced when baptism
ceased to be administered to adults. Thereupon follows the
opinion of Jacob Mehrning, that about the year 800, infant
baptism was doubtful and hung by a thread.</p>

<p>Seb. Franck quotes the statement of Beatus Rhenanus, (from
Tertullian), saying that according to the usage of the
ancients, the adults were baptized with the washing of
regeneration; which is also confirmed by the testimony of
Polydorus.</p>

<p>The conclusion taken from P. J. Twisck, is to the effect,
that the ancient custom of baptizing adult, believing and
penitent persons, seems to have still obtained in some measure,
even with the general church. Conclusion for this century.]</p>

<p>As in winter the sun does not always, but only at times,
send down his bright beams upon the earth, even though he has
risen above the horizon, and even reached the meridian, so it
was also in the eighth century, with the true faith, and the
baptism which is administered upon faith. For although the
light of the holy Gospel had at that time risen in the hearts
of many pious persons, so that they apprehended the faith, and,
in token of it, were baptized thereupon, yet, there were but
few who exhibited to mankind, by their writings, the bright
splendor of the evangelical truth; at least this is true, that
but very little has come down to the present generation.
Nevertheless, we have met with enough to prove that this dark
age also was not entirely destitute of persons who shone forth
as flaming torches in the midnight of papal error, and shed
abroad the radiance of God's truth, especially in the matter of
baptism. To prove this will not be difficult for us; hence we
begin.</p>

<p>A. D. 701.-For the last year of the preceding century, that
is, for A. D. 700, we showed that Lutgerus and Libuga, two
Christian parents, left their son Lutgerus unbaptized till he,
having accepted</p>

</div><div id="222"> 

<p>the faith, was baptized of his own accord. This occurred in
France, at the time referred to, and it is also stated that the
same year, in Spain, Herinigild, having attained to the faith
through the instruction of Leander, was baptized; besides
various other persons, both before and at that time, as the
chronicles show.</p>

<p>From this it clearly follows that the people who held this
belief must have existed also in the beginning of this century,
since a religion that has once obtained a footing, cannot well
be abolished in a year or two, especially if it is spread over
different countries, and is zealously advocated, which latter,
as has been shown, the true believers did. Hence we shall
proceed to the persons who held this belief and whose names are
mentioned in this century.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 716. <i>Bapt. Hist., page</i> 534. D. Vicecomes
(lib. 3, <i>cap.</i> 5), quotes from Germanus, a father at
Constantinople, who lived in the time of Leo Isauricus, that it
was still customary then, to make confession of sins before
baptism.</p>

<p>He speaks here of a general custom observed at that time in
the East, in the Greek churches; which custom consisted in
this, that confession of sins was made before baptism; which,
as everyone can judge, could not be done by infants, but only
by adult persons.</p>

<p>If any one should object here, that this related only to the
intelligent, but that infants were baptized, though they did
not make such confession, we reply that this does not appear at
all, nay, that the contrary follows clearly, since the custom
spoken of was a general one, binding for all who were to be
baptized; and as infants could not follow this custom, it is
incontrovertible, that they were not admitted to the baptism
which required it.</p>

<p><i>From A. D.</i> 724 <i>to</i> 736.-At this time there was
conspicuous in the kingdom of England, Bede,* surnamed the
Presbyter, who, having at one time maintained the Roman
superstitions, and among these, infant baptism, now openly
declared to hold different views in many points. Touching
baptism, he is stated to have declared the following <i>(Bapt.
Hist., paya</i> 532, on Acts 19), "All who came to the apostts
to be baptized, were first instructed and taught by them; and
having been instructed and taught concerning baptism, they were
baptized, by virtue of the apostolic office." Compare with Mark
16:16.</p>

<p><i>Page</i> 533, D. Vicecomes <i>(lib. 1, cap:</i> 5) quotes
the following testimonies from Bede. He writes, "Bede says that the Angles were baptized in the Rhine and in
the Swalbe." Regarding the manner, compare this with Matt.
3:6, "And were baptized of him in Jordan, confessing their
sins." Again, "And John also was baptizing in Enon, near to
Salim, because there was much water there: and they came and
were baptized" (John 3:23) . This mode of baptism, as we have
shown elsewhere,</p>

<br /><cite>* Venerable Bede.-Transl. was not administered
to infants, but only to adult and intelligent persons; nay, it
is shown there, that this could not be otherwise.</cite> 

<p>Bede, in his exposition on the book of Esdras <i>(D.
vicecomes, lib. 2, cap.</i> 3), writes,"To the hearers of the
new life (that is, the catechumens) we deliver the confession
of faith as laid down by the twelve apostles."</p>

<p>From the circumstance mentioned here, that the confession of
faith was delivered to the_ catechumens, namely, that they
might learn it, and be baptized thereupon, it appears that at
the time and place of which he speaks, no such haste was made
to have infants baptized, as had been done previously, and as
was also done subsequently, by those of the Roman church. For
these catechumens were certainly not baptized in their infancy,
or presented for baptism by their parents; but, in order to be
truly baptized, they first learned the catechism, which was the
instruction in the faith of the Christians in those times; and
in order that they might be perfectly instructed therein, the
whole confession of faith was delivered to them, before they
were baptized.</p>

<p><i>Bede (lib.</i> 3, cap. 3), on <i>Heb.</i> 6, 'further
says, "The separation from the Egyptians signifies the
separation from sin, which those who are to be baptized (must)
profess . . . as Saint Peter has said, Acts 2: 'Repent, and be
baptized every one of you, in the name of Jesus Christ our
Lord;' as though he would say: Depart from Egypt; go through
the Red Sea. Moreover, in the epistle to the Hebrews, there is
mentioned <i>before baptism,</i> repentance from dead works;
but what else is repentance from dead works, than a being slain
unto sin, that we may live unto God in holiness?"</p>

<p>Here four things are mentioned which do not apply to the
baptism of infants. 1. The separation from sin, which those who
were to be baptized, must confess. 2. Peter's exhortation, Acts
2, "Repent," etc., which was not spoken to infants, but to
intelligent, penitent sinners. 3. The passage of Paul, from the
epistle to the Hebrews, chap. 6, verse 2, where before baptism
repentance from dead works is mentioned. 4. Bede's exposition
of said passage, "What is repentance from dead works, but a
dying unto sin, that we may live unto God in holiness?"</p>

<p>I feel confident that even our opponents will concur with us
in saying that the conditions which Bede here joins to baptism,
do not relate to infants, and, hence, cannot be applied to the
baptism of infants.</p>

<p><i>Bede (in lib.</i> 2, Hist. <i>Anglic.)</i> writes of
Paulinus, the teacher at York: He preached the Word of God from
that time on for six years, and there believed and were
baptized as many as were ordained (or destined) to eternal
life, etc.; among whom there were Offrid and Eadfrid, the sons
of King Edwin, who were both born to him in the misery of his
exile, and were both taken out of this life while yet in their
white garments."</p>

</div><div id="223"> 

<p>This is a noble example of Paulinus, who preached the word
of God to the people, before he baptized them; nor is it less
remarkable, that those who <i>believed</i> were
<i>baptized,</i> and that the sons of Edwin, though exiles, yet
the scions of a great race, having accepted the faith, humbled
themselves to baptism. It was to be lamented, however, that
these two youths, who might long have been lights and ensamples
in the church, were taken out of this life so suddenly, even
while they yet had on their white garments, which it was
customary to wear immediately after baptism, as a sign of
purity.</p>

<p>In the meantime we must rejoice that even in those benighted
times, so much light of the faith shone forth, that not only
some of the common people, but also the children of the great
were enlightened by it, so that they willingly bowed themselves
under the yoke of Christ, through baptism:</p>

<p>Bede, on John 4, says, "Take away the water, and there is no
baptism;take away the word of God, and there is also no
baptism." <i>Bapt. Hist.,</i> p. 505.</p>

<p>By this he indicates that the water cannot be separated from
the Word, neither the Word from the water; that is, that the
doctrine cannot stand without baptism, and baptism not without
the doctrine; thus his meaning is, that both doctrine and
baptism must go together. But how this applies to infant
baptism, in which the Word is separated from the water, or the
doctrine from the baptism, any one that has understanding can
judge.</p>

<p>That all believers must be baptized, Bede teaches in his
exposition of job 1, "Through the obedience of faith all
believers must come to baptism," and on chap. 2 he says, "No one
is worthy to enter into the kingdom of God, unless he is born
again of water and of the Spirit."</p>

<p>In the first sentence he indicates that the believers must
come to baptism; of others he makes no mention; even as Philip
said to the Ethiopian, "If thou believest with all thine heart,
thou mayest." Acts 8:37.</p>

<p>In the second sentence he speaks of the regeneration of
water and of the Spirit; concerning which Christ spoke to
Nicodemus, who was not an infant, but a man of years, yea, a
master in Israel. John 3:1, 10. Hence, it can or should be
sufficiently understood, what kind of baptism it is of which he
speaks in said place, namely, such a baptism as belongs not to
children, but to the reasonable and regenerated.</p>

<p>That which is adduced, in <i>lib.</i> 4, <i>Cantic.,</i> of
his belief <i>respecting the faith of children,</i> we do not
accept as his work, but as the production of some one who chose
to publish it under his name; because, in the first place, its
tenor throughout does not accord with the style of his writing;
and in the second place, because we know neither the writer nor
the authenticity of said work.</p>

<p>We will conclude this subject with the account given by P.
J. Twisck, in his <i>Chronijk., 8th</i> <i>book, page</i> 254,
col. 2, "Bede, formerly a learned priest* and monk in England,
died this year, A. D. 736 (Meruia says A. D. 734), aged 70
years. He wrote .many good books, as history testifies. He
says, "All who came to the apostles to be baptized, were
instructed and taught by them, and having been instructed and
taught concerning the sacrament of baptism, they accepted the
holy administration of baptism." On Acts 19, <i>Histor. hinc.,
lib.</i> 24, <i>Leonh., lib.</i> 2, <i>Grond. Bewijs., letter
A.</i></p>

<p>Again: He calls the Lord's bread a sacrament and figure of
the body and blood of Christ, and says, "Since bread sustains
the body, and wine makes blood, Christ has compared the bread
to His body, and the wine to His blood."** From <i>Seb. Franck,
fol.</i> 65.</p>

<p>Thus Bede declared against the pope and the Roman church,
and, as can be inferred, in favor of the belief of the
Anabaptists, not only in the matter of baptism, but also in
regard to the holy Supper, and other points, which we have not
mentioned.</p>

<p><i>NOTE.-A.</i> D. 732. Bede taught at this time, that
Christ instituted a sacrament as a memorial of redemption. On
Luke 22.</p>

<p>Isidore explained the words of Christ, "Thou art Peter,"
etc., thus, "Upon this rock which thou hast confessed, I will
build my church. For that rock," he says,"was Christ, upon
which foundation also Peter was built." <i>Lib.</i> 7,
<i>Etim., cap. 9, Samuel heltius, Geslacht-register, page</i>
126.</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 760.-D. Vicecomes <i>(lib. 1, cap.</i>
35, <i>Bapt. Hist., page</i> 523), records that Amalarius
Fortunatus,*** a learned man of this period, writes the
following concerning the newly-baptized Christians, "Our
newly-planted Christians are led to the church for eight days
by their leaders."</p>

<p>This, as everyone knows, cannot be done with or by infants.
Continuing, Vicecomes <i>(lib.</i> 3, <i>cap. 6 and</i> 7)
writes what advice Amalarius Fortunatus gave to those who
wished to be baptized, saying, "He that desires to be baptized,
must fast for several days previous to it, according to the
example of Cornelius, who, in order to receive baptism
worthily, prayed at the ninth hour, and fasted in his
house."</p>

<p>He does not speak of such candidates as had no knowledge,
and to whom baptism was administered without their knowing and
wishing it, but of such as had come to knowledge, and desired
to be baptized. Hence his words are, "He that desires to be
baptized."</p>

<br /><cite>* In what Bede's priesthood or monkhood
consisted, is not expressed; hence nothing can be concluded
regarding it.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* He calls the bread of the Supper a figure,
which does not accord well with the priesthood or monkhood.</cite> 

<p>I The life of Amalarius Fortunatus is described in history
shortly after the middle of the eighth century, or about A.D.
760, though P. J. Twisck refers him to the year 836, the time
of I,udovicus Pius, which is 76 years later; however, both may
be true, if Amalarius wrote from his youth to old age, which
may easily ave been the case. As regards his belief, Twisck
gives this account, "Amalarius Fortunatus, at this time, in the
reign of I,udovicus Pius, wrote several excellent treatises
against transubstantiation and the corporeal presence of the
body of Christ, of the internal sacrifice of believers, and
other fine things, as can be seen in Catal. Test., fol. 161, P.
J. Twisck, Chron.. 9th book, page 285, col. 1.</p>

</div><div id="224"> 

<p>The example of Cornelius, adduced by him in order to teach
the candidates to fast and pray before baptism, confirms our
preceding view, namely, that he is not treating of infants, but
of intelligent persons.</p>

<p>Amalarius <i>(lib. 1, de</i> O'ffic. <i>Eccles., hicecomes;
lib. 3, cap. 14, page 524),</i> writes, "The second meeting of
the catechumens takes place four weeks from the time of
fasting; then, on the fourth day of said week is held the third
examination; they are then instructed in the beginning of the
four evangelists, and receive on that day the Lord's Prayer and
the Apostles' Creed, which they recite (or profess) on holy
Easter Eve.</p>

<p>Concerning what is related between, and which we have not
noticed, namely, how the teacher would touch the ear of the
novices with his finger, this we leave as it is, neither
commending nor condemning it, seeing it is of small importance.
In the meantime, it is gratifying to us, that the novices were
then examined in the faith before baptism, which is a proof
that the example of the first church, yea, of the holy
apostles, was still followed. See Acts <i>8:35, 36, 37.</i></p>

<p>Besides the above, D. Vicecomes <i>(lib. 5, cap. 39)</i>
quotes the following from Amalarius, ".On holy Easter and
Whitsuntide, the church ~of God) has always been wont to gather
unto God new members, through baptism, and we justly rejoice
over their salvation, since the white garments worn by them
indicate the brightness of their purified minds." <i>Bapt.
Hist. page 524.</i></p>

<p>As regards the custom of baptizing on Easter and
Whitsuntide, and the white garments then put on the candidates,
an explanation has been given elsewhere, namely, that this was
done to none but believers. With this we leave the testimony of
Amalarius Fortunatus.</p>

<p>NOTE.-It is stated that about the same time there lived an
eminent man and defender of the Christian religion, named
Antharitis, who, however, was opposed to the Roman church, and
particularly to the baptism of infants, holding the opinion
that they should not be baptized; on account of which it was
reported of him that he rejected baptism entirely; or, at
least, that he said, no baptism should be taught; which is to
be understood of the baptism administered to infants.
Concerning this, .I find this annotation, "Gregory, in the
Register of the Longobards, writes that Antharitis refused
baptism to the children of Christians." <i>Seb. Franck, Chron.,
Rom. Kett., fol.</i> 74, col. 2.</p>

<p><i>About A.</i> D. 768.-We find that at this time even among
some of the Romanists, instruction in the faith was practiced
before baptism, so that to this end they established certain
rules, by which infant baptism was weakened not a little, and
baptism upon faith, according to the ordinance of Christ,
greatly strengthened. Touching the rules established at said
time, the following, among other things, is recorded in
<i>Bapt. Hist., page 527,</i> from <i>vicecom., lib. 1, cap.
26:</i> "On the Sabbath (or Sunday) of holy Whitsuntide they
shall all fast, and observe all the divine services, with
reading and praying as well as with baptism." <i>Cap. 27.</i>
Those who desire to be baptized, shall come to church (or to
the assembly) with their leaders, after the third hour, on the
Sunday before Easter. <i>Cap. 29.</i> Here it is taught, how
the teachers are to descend to the baptismal water, and how
they are to baptize first the men and then the women.</p>

<p>Having noted these things, D. Vicecomes <i>(cap.</i> 6)
writes concerning it the following, "The men and the women were
separately admitted to the catechism, that is, to the
instruction in the faith; first the men, and then the women.
Hence, in the ordination (for this purpose) there occurs the
prayer: Almighty, eternal God, and Father of our Lord Jesus
Christ, behold with gracious eyes these Thy servants, whom Thou
hast made worthy to be called to the first principles of the
faith." A like prayer was pronounced over the women.</p>

<p>A little further on he writes, "When this was done, he (the
teacher) went among them, and laid his hands upon their heads,
saying: Sing with a loud voice, 'I believe in one God the
Father.' Turning then to the women, he did the same."</p>

<p>This, the author says, was done for the sake of discipline
and virtue, that these might be implanted together with the
doctrine of the faith, in the catechumens; for Christ said to
His apostles (Matt. <i>28), "Teach</i> all nations, baptizing
them in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy
Ghost;" adding, "Teaching them to observe all things whatsoever
I have commanded you."</p>

<p>Understanding this to be the best course, the apostle Peter
(Acts <i>2)</i> first enlightened the people by preaching, and
taught them to repent of their former wicked life; whereupon
those who with eager ears heard the Word of God, and had
derived profit therefrom, were baptized., "Would to God," says the writer who has quoted this,"that
the Roman church had continued in the baptismal ordinance of
Christ and His holy apostles; never would there have become of
it such an absurd infant baptism, and, thence, such a grossly
barbarous and ignorant Christendom in Europe." <i>Bapt. Hist:,
page 528.</i></p>

<p>Those who had been baptized thus (that is, upon faith), were
then exhorted several times by a deacon, to pray on their
bended knees. <i>Bapt. Hist., page 532, ex Ord. Rom., and Amal.
Fort.</i></p>

<p>Who will believe that these persons, who have thus written
on baptism, were members of the Roman church? I say nothing of
the many other points which they, as can be inferred,
maintained in opposition to the common Romanists. Who would not
hold it certain, that these people were entirely separated from
the papists, who observed the Roman superstitions? Yea, that at
the present day they would be declared heretics by the pope,
and, should persecution arise, be placed at stakes and burned
alive? as has occurred not long since,</p>

</div><div id="225"> 

<p>yea, recently, to many of our fellow believers, on account
of the same belief, as will appear more fully in the sequel of
this history.</p>

<p>We shall, therefore, commit these people to God. Whether
they agreed in all other points with the common Anabaptists, we
are not able to show; it suffices us that they, though called
Romanists, opposed the belief of the common Romanists, and that
they approach very near the truth in important points,
especially in the article of baptism. With this we will leave
them, and proceed to other testimonies.</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 772.-We quote the following from <i>Bapt.
Hist., page</i> 515, "Those who had come to adult years, had to
be instructed first in the Christian doctrine, and were then
examined before baptism., "Wittikind became a catechumen, was instructed in the faith,
and then baptized with Albion., "They had to say the creed and the Lord's Prayer." Syn.
<i>Ang., crap.</i> 2., "The teachers had to instruct the people, how to renounce
(Satan) at baptism, and what to believe." Syn. <i>Turon., cap.
18.</i></p>

<p><i>Page</i> 516, "They had to be tolerably instructed in the
doctrine of Christ, and be given to godliness, for (in the
council of Arles) it was enjoined' upon the leaders to teach
them.", "They used to renounce the devil and his works; which works
are-murder, fornication, adultery, drunkenness, and such like;
the pomp is pride, presumption, vanity, vainglory, temerity."
Syn. Tur.</p>

<p>Certainly, these were all wholesome and good rules,
approaching very near the apostolical teachings; hence we
accept them as good instruction in this iron and corroded age.
It is achieving a good deal, if one who stands at the point
where many crooked roads meet, takes the right, or, at least,
the best one. That these people who observed said rules, were
entirely free from error in other points, it is not our
intention to maintain. He that walks amidst the darkness of
night, can easily miss the way; so also they, living as they
must, in the darkness of popery, could easily be misled in this
or that point. We let God judge them, being content with this,
that through the darkness we have seen the rays of their
knowledge and good practice.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 781.-This is the year which is mentioned by
different writers as the one in which the farfamed Carloman,
though he had accepted the Christian faith himself, presented
his son, who was then several years old, and whom he had up to
this time left unbaptized, for baptism, which was administered
to him in the city of Rome, on Easter; likewise his daughter
Gisla, of whom it is stated that she was baptized the same
year, at Milan, by the Bishop or teacher Thomas. <i>Bapt.
Hist., page</i> 523, <i>H. Montan. Nietigh., pages 80, 81,</i>
from <i>Centur. 9, Magdeb., cap. 4, Annal. Francor. Regino.,
lib.</i> 2, <i>Adon. Aetate,</i> 6.</p>

<p>From this manner of proceeding it appears; that at this time
no such reasoning obtained, as was afterwards, and had also
previously been, resorted to by those of the Roman church, who
commanded parents, on peril of their salvation, yea, on pain of
damnation, to have their children baptized. But those who took
a proper view of the matter, and esteemed the command of Christ
more than the decrees and statutes of men, did not allow
themselves to be intimidated by these threats, but deferred the
baptism of their children, till they, having grown up, accepted
.the faith, and themselves desired to be baptized
thereupon.</p>

<p>We say nothing respecting Carloman, the father here spoken
of, neither of him who baptized his son, and would conclude
neither this nor that touching their life and faith; we simply
commend .their action in this matter; on the one hand, that the
father, though he had professed Christ, and was called a member
of the church, left his son and daughter unbaptized, as an
evidence .that he considered infant baptism (as a human
invention) useless; on the other hand, that those who baptized
them, did not censure this course, but rather assented .to and
confirmed it with the deed, which is the more evident from the
fact that the ordinance was administered with great pleasure,
yea, joy, as history tells us.</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 792.-Albinus teaches on John 1 <i>(Bapt.
Hist., page</i> 505), that baptism is to be received with
faith. He writes, "It is aptly said that the forerunner of our,
Lord baptized in Bethabara; for Bethabara signifis a house of
obedience, that they should all through the obedience of faith.
come to the baptism of Christ."</p>

<p>This Albinus, surnamed Flaccus, was a remarkably learned and
beloved man of that age, but nevertheless called ignorant, and
hated, by his adversaries. In his confession he was greatly
opposed to the common belief of the Roman church, especially in
the matter of baptism. In baptism he required faith,
regeneration, and newness of life, declaring that these were
the means to receive it worthily; which things, though highly
spoken of with the mouth, yet in infant baptism are practically
ignored.</p>

<p>In the defense of his belief he was bold, regarding, it
seems, neither the hatred nor the favor of the people, so that,
besides what we have just mentioned, he left various excellent
things concerning the baptism of adults; of which we will
present a few instances.</p>

<p>On John 15 <i>(page 509)</i> he says, "Why does not the Lord
say: Ye are clean because of the baptism in which ye are
washed? but says: <i>Through the word which 1 have spoken unto
you.</i> For, taker away the Word, and what is the water, but
water? When the Word meets the element, then it becomes a
sacrament. Whence derives the water the power, that, though it
wets the body, the soul is purified, if the Word does not
effect this? But this is not effected, because it is spoken,
but because it is believed.</p>

<p>In baptism there are three visible things: 1. the</p>

</div><div id="226"> 

<p>body (of the one baptized); 2. the water; 3. the teacher;
and three invisible things: 1. the soul; 2. faith; 3. the
Spirit of God."</p>

<p>We can almost see with our eyes, and feel with our hands,
that this man here intended, to oppose the belief of the common
Romanists. He makes use of two special arguments, with which he
sufficiently denies, yea, refutes, the Roman infant baptism.
His first argument opposes the belief of those who were wont to
tie salvation to the elementary water of baptism, and,
consequently, to save them, as it were, baptized the infants;
in opposition to which he averred that the element of water
without the Word of God is merely an element, and no sacrament;
but that the water becomes a sacrament through the Word of God,
not because the latter is spoken, but because it is believed.
And thus he removes with his first argument also another error
of the Romanists, who imagined that in baptism, through the
saying of a few words, the water was consecrated and made a
means of salvation; which he refutes, however, by the
declaration that the consecration is not effected by the
speaking of the Word, but because it is believed.</p>

<p>If then, in baptism, the water is ineffectual without the
Word, and the Word has no virtue unless it is believed, as
Albinus declares, he flatly opposes infant baptism, since there
the water only is used, without the instructing Word, and
without the latter being believed by the infants.</p>

<p>His second argument is a sufficient refutation of those who
administered baptism to infants, without regard as to whether
they had intelligent minds, true faith, and the fruits of God's
Spirit, or not; for, this belief he opposes when he says that
in baptism there must be not only three visible things: .1. the
body; 2. the water; 3. the teacher; but also three invisible
things: 1. the soul [mind], (that is, an intelligent soul, for
otherwise the soul cannot properly be so called); 2. faith
(that is, that which consists in a sure confidence, for this is
peculiar to true faith, Heb. 11:1); 3. thp Spirit of God (that
is, that which is fruitful in virtues), for the Spirit of God
is known by His fruits, Gal. 5:22. But who has ever been found
that was able to discover such works of the soul, of faith, and
of the spirit, in infants? without which, indeed, baptism has
no virtue, as conclusively follows from the arguments of
Albinus, which are in accordance with the teachings of the holy
Word of God. How this harmonizes with infant baptism, the
impartial may judge.</p>

<p>Of regeneration, Albinus, in the 7th penitential psalm (page
510), says, "Thou art my God; Thou hast created me. I can be
recreated by no one but Thee, by whom I have been created. Thou
hast created me by Thy Word, which, O God, abideth with Thee.
Thou createst me again by the Word, which has become flesh for
our sakes."</p>

<p>The Romanists were accustomed sometimes to call baptism, by
which they meant infant baptism, a regeneration, without
respect to newness of life, merely on account of the water,
which, with the speaking of a few words, was administered to
the infants. But Albinus here declares that as he was created
by the Word, even so he is recreated and regenerated by the
Word. He says nothing at all about the water; not to depreciate
the outward administration of water baptism, but to show that
recreation or regeneration does not lie in it; for, that the
same must be effected by the Word, whereupon the administration
of water baptism follows, as a sign of it, seems to be the
burden of his whole argument.</p>

<p>Moreover, it is also deserving of notice, that in the above
passage, touching the incarnation of Jesus Christ, he says,
that the Word (namely, by which all things were made) became
flesh for our sakes, which accords with our confession, and
also agrees with John 1:14.</p>

<p>Albinus (lib. 3, <i>de Trin., cap. 17, page</i> 512)
says, "We are not to believe that He (Christ) then received the
gifts of the Holy Ghost; He who from His birth was always full
of the Holy Ghost; but that the mystery of the holy Trinity
might be declared unto us in baptism, the Son of God was
baptized, being a man; the Holy Spirit descended as a dove; God
the Father was heard in a voice, without the invocation of
which, no baptism can avail anything. Therefore, the Son of God
wished to signify by His own baptism, that the whole Trinity
was present; who commanded the stewards of His mysteries (the
apostles), "Go teach all nations, baptizing them in the name of
the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost."</p>

<p>Again: Why did the Lord have Himself baptized? Namely, that
no one, though he might possess great gifts and power, should
despise to be baptized.</p>

<p>He makes use here of three modes of speaking which are
incompatible with infant baptism. First, when he says that
without the invocation of the holy Trinity no baptism can avail
anything; for, who knows not that infants cannot invoke the
holy Trinity? Secondly, when he adduces, as a foundation of
baptism, the command of Christ, "Teach all nations, baptizing
them," etc.; for there teaching and baptizing are joined
together, which, as even some pedobaptists declare, is
inapplicable to infants. Thirdly, when he shows why the Lord
had Himself baptized? Namely, that no one, though</p>

<p>he might possess great gifts and power, should despise to be
baptized. For, that this also cannot be understood of infants,
even nature teaches; since they have no great gifts or power,
and, consequently, can neither rely upon them nor despise
baptism.</p>

<p>D. Vicecomes (lib. 1. cap. 32, page 535) quotes the
following from Albinus Flaccus, "At baptism. on holy Easter Day,
the catechumens (the novices who have been instructed in the
faith), if they de-</p>

<p>sire baptism, recite the Lord's Prayer and the creed from
memory."</p>

</div><div id="227"> 

<p>This is certainly clear testimony of the custom of -the
believers of that age, from which it is evident, that their
children and novices had to know the Lord's Prayer and the
creed, yea, had to recite it from memory, and must themselves
desire baptism, before they were baptized. Who would say that
new-born infants can do this? Moreover, it was not only
required, to recite the Lord's Prayer and the creed from
memory, but also to give reason for it, and this not only once,
but several times, on different days appointed for this
purpose, in the week before Easter and Whitsuntide, as shown
above, to which we refer the reader. See also, G. <i>Durand.,
lib. 6. Ration. Div.</i> Offic. <i>de 4. Feria Hebel. 4.
Quadrag, etc.</i></p>

</div><div id="536."> 
<p>Vicecomes (lib. 3, <i>cap.
21),</i> says, "He (Albinus) also makes mention of the
examination (in the faith) of the elect, that is, those chosen
to be baptized, tracing them down from the times of the
apostles." Cap. <i>22,</i> he says, "Then took place the
examination (in the faith), in order that it might be
ascertained with greater certainty, whether, after the
renunciation of Satan, the Word of God and the faith promised
to it, had taken deep root in the heart." Cap.
<i>26:</i> "Albinus Flaccus, in the chapter on baptism, writes:
'For the baptism of the elect, who are examined (in the faith),
according to the rule of the apostles, consecrated by fasting,
and instructed by diligent preaching, two seasons are set
apart, Easter and Whitsuntide.'"</p>

<p>To this, D. Vicecomes adds this comment, "If these
examinations were held according to the rules of the apostles,
they must needs have been observed by all; but subsequently,
when infant baptism came into vogue, this necessary practice
was abolished (or discontinued) by the church. A. D. 860, in
the reign of the Emperors Louis the Pious and Lothaire; of
which abundant proof exists."</p>

<p>What do you think, beloved reader, of this last testimony?
to say nothing of the testimonies of AIbinus Flaccus. This
Vicecomes was a pedobaptist and strenuous maintainer of
pedobaptism; yet he states that the necessary (yea,
apostolical) practice of examinations (in the faith) was
abolished or discontinued when infant baptism came into vogue;
he also indicates the time when this occurred, namely, A. D.
860. As to how he came at this, we leave to him to answer.</p>

<p>In the meantime, this is also quite a refutation of .those
who fix the origin of infant baptism very early, indeed
according to some, in the tune of the apostles. However, that
infant baptism, together with many other superstitions,
originated soon after the death of the apostles, they can, in
some measure substantiate; but that it wavered in the Roman
church, for many centuries, till the year <i>900,</i> yea,
almost 1000, being now established, then abolished, adopted in
one place, and rejected in another, etc., appears sufficiently
from the books in which we have read the same.</p>

<p>We confine ourselves to the time of Albinus Flaccus, who
lived about A. D. <i>792,</i> when this intrusion was already
rapidly gaining ground, which also D. Vicecomes has seen, for,
when he mentions the chrism in baptism, and some other
factitious practices of the papists, he adds that it is his
opinion that all this did not begin until after the time of
Albinus Flaccus, when they ceased to baptize adults. <i>Lib. 5,
cap. 5 and 19.</i></p>

<p>I cannot forbear adding here the verdict of Jacob Mehrning,
who, immediately after noting the preceding passages from D.
Vicecomes, writes, "Thus we see from the history of this time,
that infant baptism hung yet as by a thread between both, being
received by some, and rejected by others, which is a strong
proof that it is not apostolical, much less instituted by
Christ Himself. But what immeasurable damage to souls, and what
grossly barbarous ignorance in Christendom, the introduction of
this absurd infant baptism has brought about, many intelligent
persons, even in that age, were able to discern. <i>Bapt.
Hist., page 537.</i></p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 800.-Various writers state that at this time,
the last year of the eighth century, infant baptism, although
those of the Roman church in general stoutly adhered to it, was
nevertheless not practiced, yea, positively rejected by many,
insomuch that they observed the very ancient custom mentioned
by us in different preceding centuries, of baptizing only
adults, on Easter and Whitsuntide.</p>

<p>Sebastian Franck, writing of this time and custom, and
having referred to Tertullian's book, <i>De Corona Militis,
says:</i> "Respecting this passage Beatus Rhenanus notes that it
was the custom of the ancients, to baptize and wash adults with
the washing of regeneration; which custom was observed till the
time of Charlemagne and the Emperor Louis, A. D. 800."
<i>Chron. Rom. Kett., page 123, col. 2.</i></p>

<p>P. J. Twisck gives the following account for the year
800, "The ancient custom was, to baptize adults with the washing
of regeneration, which was observed till the time of the
Emperors Charlemagne and Louis. This is shown by the laws
established by them, in which the priests (that is, the
teachers) were prohibited from baptizing at any other time than
Easter and Whitsuntide, except where death was imminent."
Again, "It was the custom of the ancients (Polydorus says), to
baptize mostly adults, and to put a white garment on them after
baptism. This was done at Easter and Whitsuntide; in the
meantime, before these feasts, those to be baptized were
instructed in the mystery of the faith, and were called
<i>catechumens,</i> that is, such as are being instructed; for,
when they had apprehended the mystery, they were baptized."
<i>Chron., 8th book, page 271, col. 2,</i> from <i>Polydor. de
Inrventoribus rerum, lib. 4. Beatus Rhenanus in Annat. super.,
Tertull., Grond. Bewrijs, letter B., Chron. Seb. Franck.,
Thorn, 1 mbr., fol. 26.</i></p>

<p>Although this century, in the beginning, seemed to be doomed
to darkness, as regards the true doc</p>

</div><div id="228"> 

<p>trine, especially with reference to the matter of baptism
upon faith, yet the sun of truth rose to a considerable
altitude, so that his beams shone out in every direction,
illuminating the face, that is, the people, of the earth. For
not only the separate Christian communities, but even many of
those who still adhered to the Roman church, observed baptism,
to say nothing of different other articles, according to the
original Christian and apostolical custom.</p>

<p>P. J. Twisck, in the conclusion of the eighth century,
though greatly deploring the manifold human inventions which
were then increasing in the Roman church, through the power of
the pope and of the councils, declared nevertheless that the
baptism of adults still obtained in some measure among them;
his words are, "The ancient custom of baptizing adult believers
and penitents appears still to exist in some measure in the
church."* Page 274.</p>

<p>From this we can judge how much more this practice must have
flourished among those who entirely free themselves from the
Roman superstitions, and who had fled as from Babel,-I mean the
members of the true Christian church, who had to hide
themselves as doves before the eagle, as shall be shown. With
this we will conclude our account of baptism in the eighth
century.</p>

 

   <h1>AN ACCOUNT OF THOSE WHO SUFFERED IN THE EIGHTH CENTURY: SUMMARY OF THE MARTYRS OF THE EIGHTH CENTURY</h1>

<p>[ We commence with a certain severe persecution of the
Christians in the East, instituted by Haumar, King of the
Saracens, about A. D. 718.</p>

<p>Thereupon follows a note concerning said persecution; it is
related that those of the East had long before separated from
those of the West (that is, from the Roman church); mention is
also made of the Thessalonian churches, which, from the time of
the apostles, are said to have continued unchanged in religion;
from which it is concluded that apparently also some of these
true believers were put to death for the true faith, in said
eastern persecution.</p>

<p>A very brief account of the great cruelty exercised by
Elvelid, the Mohammedan, A. D. 739, against all Christian
prisoners in the eastern countries, whom without mercy, he
caused to be put to death, because of the Christian worship;
upon which follows a note containing more particulars, and some
explanation with regard to Eutichius, Peter of Damascus, Peter
Mavimenus, and others, who were put to death for the Gospel, in
the East, particularly at Damascus.</p>

<br /><cite>* This appears also quite clearly from the
example of Charlemagne, who, about the year 781 had his son
Carloman, who was then several years old, baptized by Pope
Adrian I, at Rome, on the feast of Easter. His daughter Gisla
was also baptized the same year, at Milan, by Bishop Thomas. H.
Montanus refers this to the year 781, but others, to A.D. 800.
Derthuin, Bertherius, Anabert, Hunored, and others, opposed the
superstitions of Boniface, the papal Legate; whereupon they are
deposed from their ministry, about A. D. 748.</cite> 

<p>Albert of Gaul, and Clement of Scotland, follow the
afore-mentioned persons, and reprove Boniface for introducing
his superstitions; then it is related, of each separately, what
happened on this account to Albert and Clement; and how they
died, according to the most reliable testimony, about A. D.
748; a discrepancy among authors as to the time of their death;
how the discrepancy can be reconciled.</p>

<p>Two followers of the afore-mentioned martyrs, Samson and
Sydonius, as well as some others, whose names are not
mentioned, maintain their doctrine against the papists,
especially against Boniface, the afore-mentioned papal legate;
but whether for this they were martyred or put to death, is not
stated.</p>

<p>A circumstantial account of a severe and lamentable
persecution instituted by Mady, King of the Arabians, against
the Christian believers in the East, about A. D. 780.</p>

<p>A note touching said persecution, as well as how the
Arabians proceeded in persecuting the Christians in other
places; also, what might be adduced, as regards the matter of
martyrization, from our account of baptism in this century.
Conclusion.]</p>

<h2>SEVERE PERSECUTION IN THE EAST, ABOUT A. D. 718</h2> 

<p>There was now considerable tranquility in the western
countries, but in the East commotions began to arise; for about
the year 718, Haumar,* King of the Saracens, issued bloody
decrees for the persecution of the Christians. He prohibited
wine, according to the laws of Mohammed, which, however, did
not matter much; but the most grievous of all was this: he
endeavored to compel the Christians to apostatize and deny
Christ; he promised exemption from tribute and taxes to those
who, forsaking Christ, should adhere to Mohammed; on the other
hand, he threatened to punish with death, all those who should
cling steadfastly to Christ. In the meantime he oppressed them
with intolerable burdens, and deprived some of life, by various
torments.**</p>

<p>He also made a law that the testimony of a Christian should
not be valid, nor be accepted against a Saracen. In short, it
is stated that by virtue of said decrees, many of the innocent
and defenseless Christians became martyrs; but in default of
faithful historians of that time, the names of said martyrs
have not come down to us, save a few, as shall appear.</p>

<br /><cite>* Paul Diae., lib. 21. Hist. Rom. in Leone
Isauro, compared with Abr. Mell. Hist., tol. 305, Col. 2.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* In the year 720, the Saracens or Arabians came
over into Spain, where they sorely persecuted and martyred many
pious Christians.-Sigibert. Chron. Tudensis. Also, Abr. Mell.,
fol. 328, Col. I However. from this we would conclude neither
the one nor the other.</cite> 

</div><div id="229"> 

<p>NOTE.-Above all, it must be observed in this account of the
eastern martyrs, -that, as far as regards open churches or
communities, those of the East had long before separated from
those of the West, that is, from the Roman church, because they
would not be subject to the power and dominion of the pope of
Rome, who, already, A. D. 606, had been declared head of all
the churches; but as such they would by no means recognize or
accept him. This separation, in the course of time, assumed
such proportions, that, as far as we know, they have not united
again even to the present day.</p>

<p>Moreover, it is established by different writers, that,
besides said separated churches, called the Greek, there are
other churches in the East, principally in the region of
Thessalonica, who are agreed in all respects with the
Anabaptists of the present day, and have maintained such faith
and practice uninterruptedly from the time of the apostles; of
this, however, we shall speak more fully in the sixteenth
century, in connection with baptism.</p>

<p>This being the case, it would not be surprising, if in said
persecution of the Christians in the East, not only this or
that single person, but, what is more, very many true believers
were martyred and put to death for the true faith in Jesus
Christ, and the sincere practice of the precepts of the Gospel.
Nevertheless, we can tell no more than what the ancient writers
have left us, and shall, therefore, proceed accordingly,
adding, whenever we think it necessary, our own opinion in the
margin or in a note.</p>

<h2>THE GREAT CRUELTY OF ELVELID, THE MOHAMMEDAN, TOWARDS ALL CHRISTIAN PRISONERS, WHOM HE, WITHOUT MERCY, CAUSED TO BE PUT TO DEATH, ON ACCOUNT OF THE CHRISTIAN RELIGION, A. D. 739</h2> 

<p>It is stated that A. D. 739, in the 23d year of Leo Isaurus,
the Mohammedan Prince Elvelid caused all the imprisoned
Christians in every city to be put to death, on account of the
Christian religion. Among them is mentioned one Eutichius, who
was carried away to Karras, in Mesopotamia, and, at the time
when said slaughter and martyrization of all imprisoned
Christian believers occurred, offered up, because of the same
faith and testimony, for his Saviour Jesus. Compare Paul.
Diac., <i>lib. 21,</i> with A. <i>Mellinus, 2d book, fol.</i>
305, col. <i>2, 3.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-Of said Eutichius we find no further account, touching
the confession of his faith, save that, when the other martyrs
were put to death, he, too, was offered up for Christ; which
must also be understood of various others. See the
above-mentioned authors, compared with what we have stated in
the beginning of this century.</p>

<p>We will say nothing of Peter, Bishop of the church of
Damascus, Peter Mavimenus, and others, who, at this time, were
also put to death in the East, particularly at Damascus, for
the testimony of the Lord Jesus, about the year 742; since the
ancient writers have left us no definite information respecting
their particular confession of faith, only a general statement,
namely, that they suffered for Christ, and for the Christian or
evangelical truth.</p>

<p>Hence it has come, that some who boast of Christ and His
holy Gospel with their mouths, yet, by their singular
expositions, yea, by their deeds and works, are very far
therefrom, have nevertheless not hesitated, to claim as of
their number, and produce as witnesses for their strange, and,
in many respects, unchristian and unevangelical confessions,
persons of whom we maintain, because of certain circumstances
mentioned by ancient writers, that they believed and lived in
perfect accordance with the true tenor of the holy Gospel, and,
as a seal of this, testified to this with their blood and
steadfast death.</p>

<p>Oh, how greatly it is to be lamented that the ancients have
not left us more definite and clear information with regard to
this! We feel confident, that it would still refresh many a
well-meaning heart, and serve to confirm their faith, if they
should see that in those .early, and not less turbulent times,
many of their fellow brethren and sisters had such love for
Christ, their beloved <i>bloodbridegroom,</i> and for His
heavenly doctrine (which they confess with them), that they did
not hesitate, the one in the fire, another in the water, some
under the teeth and claws of wild beasts, others under the
sword, the deadly halter, or otherwise, to bear testimony to
it.</p>

<p>But we hope that in the right place, and throughout, we have
given as much information and explanation in regard to it, .as
will satisfy a true Christian and well-meaning soul. All things
cannot be discussed in one place.</p>

<p>We will here leave this, and proceed from the East, of which
we have hitherto spoken, to the West, where now we think we can
find clearer information concerning several special points of
the faith, namely, of such persons as did not suffer under the
heathen, Mohammedans, Saracens, or the like, but under the pope
of Rome, or the Roman church, where it was customary to
con-</p>

<p>demn people on some particular articles of worship. But
before we proceed to the martyrs who were punished as criminals
and with death, we</p>

<p>deem it well, by way of introduction to, and preparation
for, this matter, to show first, how this, as</p>

<p>by steps, took its rise; namely, how first a few persons,
whom we shall name, about this time, opposed a certain papal
Legate, with words and censures, for introducing certain
superstitions; and what occurred to them, on this account, from
the pope.</p>

</div><div id="230"> 

<h2>OF DERTHUIN, BERTHERIUS, ANOBERT, HUNORED, AND OTHERS, WHO WERE DEPOSED FROM THEIR MINISTRY, BECAUSE THEY WOULD NOT ACCEPT THE SUPERSTITIONS OF THE PAPAL LEGATE, ETC., ABOUT A. D. 748</h2> 

<p>A certain Boniface, Archbishop of Mayence, having been sent
out, as an apostle, ambassador and legate, by Pope Zacharias I,
to convert the heathen to the Roman see (as it was called), and
to inoculate to those who already belonged to it, the Roman
ceremonies and superstitions, and cause them to observe the
same, many bishops, overseers, or teachers, in Germany,
Bavaria, and France, opposed it with spiritual weapons, namely,
with reproofs from the Word of God, refusing to obey in this
respect, either the pope or his legate.</p>

<p>Among those who thus refused, there are mentioned by name,
Derthuin, Bertherius, Anobert, and Hunored. These men were
accused to the pope, and charged not only with said matter,
but, from envy, also with being avaricious, proud and desirous
of filthy lucre. Thereupon they were all deposed from their
ministry, by authority of the pope and his legate; but how it
ended with them, is not stated, though it is to be presumed
that some kind of ecclesiastical exclusion, anathematization or
excommunication followed; however, since this is passed by in
silence, we can conclude nothing certain concerning it.</p>

<p>In the meantime, there appears, on the one hand, the
boldness of said persons in reproving the Roman superstitions,
and, on the other hand, the shameless arrogance of the pope and
his legate, in deposing and removing those who, loving the
good, could not refrain, according to the doctrine of the Word
of God, from reproving the evil. See <i>A. Mell., fol.</i> 328,
col. 2, compared with <i>Aventin. Annal. Boi.,</i> lib. 3.</p>

<h2>HOW ALBERT OF GAUL, AND CLEMENT OF SCOTLAND, ALSO OPPOSED THE PAPAL SUPERSTITIONS, ABOUT A. D. 750; ON ACCOUNT OF WHICH THEY WERE MARTYRED</h2> 

<p>It is stated that about A. D. 750, there lived two very
eminent men, Albert, surnamed Gallus, that is, of Gaul or
France, and Clement, surnamed Scotus, that is, of Scotland.
Both opposed the superstitions of common popery in various
points; Albert began first, in some part of France, and was
followed by said Clement, who came from Scotland and joined
him. In consequence of this, both, yet each separately, had to
feel the sting of the pope, in such a manner as the sequel will
show. In order to present this, together with the circumstances
pertaining to it, in the most suitable way, we shall treat of
each separately, beginning with Albert, since he was the first
and principal one in said matter.</p>

<h2>ALBERT OF GAUL, FOR OPPOSING THE ROMAN SUPERSTITIONS, CAST INTO PRISON AT FULDA, IN WHICH HE, TO ALL APPEARANCE, PERISHED THROUGH WANT, ABOUT THE CLOSE OF THE YEAR 750</h2> 

<p>Enlightened by the heavenly radiance of the doctrine of the
apostles, Albert, with voice and pen, had again and again
reproved the errors, and superstitions of the Roman church,
assertin, namely, that priests or teachers should not be
prohibited from marrying; that the relics, or bones, of the
saints ought not to be venerated; that images should not be
worshiped or saluted as a religious service, and that the pope
has no right to the primacy (or supremacy) over the church. He
condemned the masses for the dead, purgatory, etc., as [human]
inventions. Wicelius adds: He rejected as unnecessary and
superstitious, ceremonies, the imposition of hands, the making
the sign of the cross, confirmation, etc., and, in short, all
such things as are practiced in popery for the purpose of
confirming infant baptism.</p>

<p>Boniface, the papal legate, therefore, accused him to the
pope, fabricating and disseminating many slanders, which were
spewed out against him as bitter gall. The pope lost no time,
nor sought to delay the matter, but immediately condemned him
unheard upon these false accusations; and the above-mentioned
articles, excommunicated him, and sent the sentence of
excommunication to said false accuser, namely, to Boniface, his
dear legate, that the latter should publish it against Albert
throughout France. Hence it is, that the papists number him
among the heretics, though they fail to show what heresy it
was, for which he was condemned and thus shamefully
excommunicated; which matter must be gleaned from other
writers, except the testimony quoted above from Wicelius,
according to A. M.</p>

<p>Having received said letter containing Albert's
excommunication, from the pope, Boniface not only caused the
same to be published throughout France, and deposed him from
his ministry, but also incarcerated him in the monastery at
Fulda, in which imprisonment he probably died of hunger,
thirst, and divers wants. Compare <i>Wilibald. in vita
Bonifacii, Aventin. Annal., lib. 3. Nauc. Gen. 26, vol. 2.
Balaeus. Cent. 14, cap. 30, 31, in Append. Epist. Zach. ad
Bonif., Tom. 2, Concil Lutsenb. Haigiol. in vita Bon.,</i> with
<i>A. M., fol. 328, col. 3;</i> also, 7. <i>Gys.,</i> edition
of 1657, fol. <i>30, col. 2, 3.</i></p>

<h2>FURTHER OBSERVATION, RESPECTING THE TIME OF THE PRECEDING EVENT</h2> 

<p>Most ancient writers, it seems, with whom also A. Mellinus
agrees, fix the time of the excommunication and martyrdom of
said Albert, about A. D. 750, A. M., <i>fol. 329, col. 1,</i>
Seb. Franck fixes it ten years earlier, namely, A. D. <i>740.
In Chron. Rom. Kett., fol.</i> 64, col. 2.</p>

</div><div id="231"> 

<p>However, this discrepancy can easily be reconciled, if a
distinction is made between the time when Albert commenced to
teach against the pope and, the Roman church, and the time when
he was anathematized by the pope, and, ultimately, deprived of
life in the dungeon at Fulda; for ten years can easily have
intervened, and Seb. Franck may therefore have had regard to
the time when he began to teach, while the other authors,
including Mellinus, may have referred to the time of his
death.</p>

<p>Regarding this it appears that John Gysius made a great
error, either through incorrect authors, or for some other
reason, when he fixes the time of the aforesaid martyr, A. D.
900. See in the margin of the place referred to above.</p>

<h2>CLEMENT OF SCOTLAND, A COMPANION OF ALBERT, EXCOMMUNICATED AND THEN BURNED, AS A HERETIC, BY THE ROMANISTS, ACCORDING TO THE TESTIMONY OF THE ANCIENTS, A. D. 750, FOR THE SAME REASON, NAMELY, FOR OPPOSING AND REJECTING THE ROMAN SUPERSTITIONS</h2> 

<p>When Clement, having come from Scotland, had joined the
aforesaid Albert as a companion, and united with him in regard
to doctrine, he not only began, but ceased not, even as the
friend whom he had found, to combat with the spiritual armor,
and, if possible, to overcome, in an evangelical manner, the
pope and the Roman church, in various points, touching mostly
her ceremonies. Thereupon he was also accused, and put to death
in such a manner as in the proper place, we presently hope to
show.</p>

<p>The accusations brought against him were of the same nature
as those preferred against Albert, his companion; which was not
at all strange, since he had placed himself under Albert, not
only as a friend and companion, but also as a disciple. For
this reason, the pope, through the accusation of Boniface, the
papal legate, pronounced the same excommunication against
him.</p>

<p>But when he presented himself for the purpose of vindicating
his conduct in a full synod, Boniface prevented him from taking
this course, making the people believe that it were not lawful
to admit a heretic who had been excommunicated or excluded from
the church, to divine worship, or to a synodal assembly; yea,
that such an one should not be permitted to have the benefit
(in whatever this might consist) of the laws or ordinances of
the church.</p>

<p>Seeing that by this pretense his lips were sealed, making it
impossible for him to properly defend himself, he had recourse
to his pen and wrote a book concerning this matter, against
Boniface.</p>

<p>Finally, it is stated and maintained that this steadfast
witness of Jesus Christ, was burned as a heretic by the
Romanists, even against the will of pope Zacharias, about A, D.
750, or a little after. Compare this entire account of Clement
with <i>Willibaldi, Kaucleri, Aventini. Balae. Alij ubi
supra.</i> Also, <i>Annal. Boj. Bernhard. Lutz, in Catal.
Hceres.,</i> Tom. 2, <i>Concil. Also, A. M., 2d book, H.
M.,</i> 1619, fol. 328, 329. <i>Hist. Mart.</i> 1. S., 1645,
fol. 30.</p>

<h2>FURTHER OBSERVATIONS TOUCHING THE CASE OF ALBERT AND CLEMENT, ACCORDING TO THE ACCOUNT OF SEBASTIAN FRANCK</h2> 
<p>"In the year," etc.,"these two men drew to them much people
in France, pretending to be followers of the apostles, and
speaking great 'things of the mysteries of God, and the life
and conduct of man. Boniface, Archbishop of France, wrote the
whole matter to the pope, who, in a council of the bishops,
laid it before them. They rejected the opinion of the
(supposed) heretic from the church." Finally he says, "They were
unanimously deposed and anathematized." <i>Chron. Rom. Kett.,
fol.</i> 64.</p>

<h2>SPECIAL ACCOUNT OF CLEMENT, ACCORDING TO P. J. TWISCK</h2> 
<p>"Clemens Scotus, a faithful disciple of Bishop Adelbert,
taught with great power in France and Germany, especially in
Bavaria and Franconia, that the pope ought not to have so much
power; that he (the pope) very improperly would forbid the
priests (or teachers) to marry; that he introduced many new and
unknown ceremonies into the church, and originated false
doctrines. He (Clement) was condemned without a hearing or
examination, and his writings or books were burned." <i>Chron.,
page</i> 258, col. 2, <i>and</i> 259, col. 1, from <i>Joh.
Munst., fol.</i> 125. <i>Aventin., lib.</i> 3. <i>Chron. Seb.
Fr., fol.</i> 54.</p>

<h2>OF TWO FOLLOWERS OF THE AFORESAID MARTYRS, NAMED SAMSON AND SYDONIUS, WHO, WITH OTHERS, MAINTAINED THEIR DOCTRINE AGAINST POPERY, PARTICULARLY AGAINST THE PAPAL LEGATE, BONIFACE, ARCHBISHOP OF MAYENCE; BUT WHETHER FOR THIS THEY WERE MARTYRED, IS NOT STATED</h2> 

<p>Samson was also a Scotchman by descent, and an elder and
companion of said Clement. He and Sydonius, Bishop in Bavaria,
and others of like purpose and belief, were as one heart and
soul, to oppose with the Word of God, Boniface, the papal
legate, who proposed to oppress the people with manifold
superstitions and burdens. This, not only Samson, but also
Sydonius and the others boldly did. They taught with word and
pen, that the apostolical embassy (as it was called) of Bishop
Boniface bore a closer resemblance to paganism or
antichristendom, than to christendom. and that he had
<i>deformed</i> rather than <i>reformed,</i> France and
Germany. Again, that he was a sycophant and</p>

</div><div id="232"> <br />
 

<p>flatterer of the pope of Rome, to whom he had not only
bound, but completely sold himself, as a sworn slave.</p>

<p>This they were able to prove, since, by a solemn oath, he
had sworn to the two popes, Zacharias I and Gregory II: That he
would bring all the persons whom he should draw to him, also
into obedience to the Roman see. These things were known from
documents written by himself and transmitted to said popes.</p>

<p>They also censured him for his evil practices in the
administration of baptism (that is, infant baptism), consisting
in the saying of certain words, by way of exorcism. In this
several questions were generally put to the unintelligent
infants, namely, "Believest thou?" etc., whereupon the sponsors, in the
child's name, answered, "Yea, I believe," etc.; which things
certainly deserved no little censure, though without them,
infant baptism had but little virtue or respectability.</p>

<p>They were also greatly offended, because he would forbid
them to marry, as contrary to the institution of God, Gen.
1:27, 28, yea, as being a doctrine of devils, I Tim. 4:1-3.
Finally it is stated, that said persons, and others, unable, in
Germany as well as in France, to bring about any improvement
with their doctrine, were greatly oppressed, partly through the
tyranny of the popes of Rome, and partly through the authority
of the kings of France, yea, were condemned in open synods,
deposed from their ministry, and shut up in prisons and
dungeons, and thus closely guarded that they might not escape.
But as to what finally became of these persons, and others of
like belief, A. Mellinus states, that the papistic historians
are ashamed to tell. Compare <i>Aventin.</i> 3, <i>Annal.
Centur. Balaei.,</i> 14, <i>cap. 31, and in Append.,</i> Tom.
2. <i>Concil. in Deeret. Greg. 2, EQist. Bonifae. ad Zachar.
Citante Balaeo. Hist. Boj., lib. 3,</i> with <i>A. Mell., 2d
book, fol. 329, eol. 1, 2.</i></p>

<h2>SEVERE AND LAMENTABLE PERSECUTION, INSTITUTED BY MADY, KING OF THE ARABIANS, AGAINST THE CHRISTIAN BELIEVERS IN THE EAST, ABOUT A. D. 780</h2> 

<p>About A. D. 780, in the fifth year of Leo IV, son of
Constantine Copronymus, Mady, King of the Arabians, greatly
devastated the church of</p>

</div><div id="233"> 

<p>God in the East, constraining the innocent and defenseless
Christians to apostatize, especially the servants and slaves.
To this end he had given full power to one Thesias, surnamed
Zelotes, to inflict upon the Christians all manner of
oppression. The latter, upon coming to Emesas, promised to
constrain no one to apostatize, or to become marked with the
sign of Mohammed, except the Jews, or those who had long before
not been Christians, but unbelievers. But when the Jews and the
Christians had been separated, he commenced to torment the
Christians far more cruelly than had ever been done by the
Governors Lysias and Agricolaus, under the heathen Emperors; so
that he put to death many of them, men as well as women, for
the name of Jesus Christ.</p>

<p>In the meantime something remarkable occurred here. Certain
women whom he visited with various torments, to see whether he
could not make them yield to his ungodliness, remained
steadfast, overcoming, through the grace of our Lord Jesus
Christ, his fury with patience. He caused a thousand stripes to
be given them, and had them scourged and tormented unto death,
till they received from Christ the crown of victory.</p>

<p>Proceeding thence throughout Syria, he demolished, as far as
Damascus, all the meeting places of the Christians, and ravaged
the churches, thus breaking the promise made by the Arabians to
those of Syria, viz.: That under their rule they should live in
peace and tranquillity, and enjoy the free and unrestricted
practice of their religion. But (as the apostle says) as then,
he that was born after the flesh persecuted him that was born
after the Spirit, even so it was now, Gal. 4:29. See Abr.
<i>Mell., 2d book, fol.</i> 306, col. 1, compare with <i>Paul.
Diae., lib. 23, Hist. Rot&amp;, in Leone</i> 4. <i>Sigibert.
Chron.,</i> A. <i>D.</i> 781; others, however, fix it A. D.
780.</p>

<h2>FURTHER OBSERVATIONS RESPECTING THE AFOREMENTIONED PERSECUTION</h2> 

<p>We commenced this century in the East, thence proceeded to
the West, and have now returned to the East, namely, to the
countries situated east from Italy, and, consequently, far from
Rome, and the Roman see of papal dominion.</p>

<p>As regards the aforesaid persecutions, as well as the
churches which existed in the East, especially in the
Thessalonian regions, and the martyrs who fell there, namely,
what and how much is to be held of them, can be gleaned from
the explanation which we gave in the beginning, and to which we
here refer the reader.</p>

<p>These Arabians proceeded and brought still more persecution
and misery upon many Christian believers in other countries;
however, for reasons already mentioned, we are again prevented
from speaking more fully, or, at least, separately, of each
person that may have been martyred there.</p>

<p>The account of holy baptism, which we have given for this
century, would furnish us with not a little matter, to fill
these hundred years to the very end with true professors of the
true faith, also with such as, to all appearance, did not
hesitate, in testimony of their upright and unwavering minds,
to lay down their lives for the sake of Jesus Christ, which is
the utmost that can be required of any martyr; but as we have
not been able to find their names, they can have no place in
this book. It is sufficient, we hope, that their names, by the
hand of God, are written in the Book of Life and eternal
salvation.</p><br />

<br />

<h1>AN ACCOUNT OF THE HOLY BAPTISM IN THE NINTH CENTURY: SUMMARY OF BAPTISM IN THE NINTH CENTURY</h1>

<p>[This account begins with a sad lamentation, that nearly all
the learned and celebrated men were corrupted through the Roman
superstitions.</p>

<p>Immediately, however, a consolation follows, namely, that in
this corrupt age there were still people who did not adhere to
the Roman superstitions.</p>

<p>Then it is shown from Haimo, that teaching must precede
baptism; that the candidate must first be instructed; that he
must first be enlightened, etc. Thereupon, in the margin, A. S.
821, it is noticed that Christus Taurinensus wrote against the
invocation of images, of the cross, of relics, of the saints,
and against the power of the pope, pilgrimages, etc. In the
margin, for the year 825, a certain council of Paris is
adduced, against image worship. In .the same place, Gratian
says that Christians must not oppose weapon with weapon, but
flee before persecution.</p>

<p>Rabanus Maurus appears, A. D. 830, and teaches how in his
time the catechumens were prepared for baptism. Of those who
asked for baptism, and made haste for it. His exposition of
Cant. 3:6, "Who is this that cometh up white as snow?" Again,
that the candidate must previously be instructed in the faith
of the incarnation of Jesus Christ; also, that in the sacrament
of the Supper, the language is figurative.</p>

<p>Angelomus follows Rabanus, teaching that the sins which have
been committed through the senses, are washed away (that.is,
forgiven) in or through baptism; which is more fully
explained.</p>

<p>Thereupon, A. D. 840, Bertram, Heymon, and Walafrid appear,
who declare themselves against the Roman church, in various
points, as in the matter of baptism, transubstantiation,
justification, good works as practiced by the papists.</p>

<p>The council of the Christians at Paris, in .the time of
Louis and Lothaire, is introduced; lamentation on account of
the encroachment of infant baptism, and the neglect of the
instruction once connected with baptism.</p>

<p>The conversion of the Slaves (of Slavonia) is stated; also,
that they were baptized, though not</p>

</div><div id="234"> 

<p>according to the Roman custom, nor in the Roman language.
Marginal notice, for A. D. 843, that Christus Lupim at Ferrara
refuted the new Roman doctrines, as purgatory.</p>

<p>A few good things respecting the baptism of adults are
adduced, for the year 848, and explained in a simple manner. In
the margin, for A. D. 858, it is stated of Gunther, Bishop of
Cologne, that he calls the pope a tyrant, yea, a wolf.</p>

<p>Idiota declares that in baptism we accept Christ as our
bridegroom. In the margin, mention is made of Ulric, Bishop of
Augsburg, that he accused the pope of error.</p>

<p>Hincmar, Bishop of Landun, opposes the baptism of infants,
and prohibits their being baptized; on account of which he is
severely accused.</p>

<p>Paschasius advances three things which are incompatible with
infant baptism.</p>

<p>Remigius teaches against the pope; likewise, Tergand, Bishop
of Triers, who calls him antichrist, and Rome Babylon.
Conclusion from P. J. Twisck and John Patrick.]</p>

<p>Jesus Christ our Saviour, speaking of the grievous times
which should come after His departure, says, (Matt. 24:12), "And
because iniquity shall abound, the love of many shall wax
cold." This was experienced at this time; for with the growth
and increase, through very many ungodly and unrighteous
superstitions, of the iniquities of the pope of Rome and the
whole Roman church, the true love for God's commandments
decreased, so that but few were found, who, as bright lights,
penetrated the smoke that came up from the Roman pit; yea,
nearly all men of learning and celebrity were corrupt. O sad
and lamentable matter 1*</p>

<p>Nevertheless, as Noah and his family served God in the first
world; Lot, in Sodom; Daniel and the three youths, Shadrach,
Meshach, and Abednego, in Babylon; Elijah and the seven
thousand who were hidden and had not bowed their knees to Baal,
in the land of Israel, where the prophets of the Lord were
slain, and his altars thrown down; even so there remained some,
though but few, at this time, who, living in the midst of
popery, did not adhere to the Roman superstitions, but abhorred
them.</p>

<p>However, in order to avoid prolixity, we shall confine
ourselves, omitting, as has been our custom, other points to
the article of baptism, except where it may be found necessary
to add something else; and shall show when and by whom this
article, with the rejection of infant baptism, was maintained
salutarily and in the fear of God, according to His words.
Hence we will begin thus.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 814-In the days of Louis the Pious, the first
of this name, who began to reign with the</p>

<br /><cite>* A.D. 812, disputes began to arise in the Roman
church, concerning transubstantiation, or the changing of the
bread and wine into the sacrament; so that the custom of the
holy Supper was converted into idolatry. P. J. Twisck, Chron.,
9th book, page 279, col. 1, from Chron. Mich., 2d part, fol.
175, Zegh., fo. 245. year 814, there lived and wrote the
celebrated Haimo, of whom various praiseworthy things
concerning baptism upon faith are still extant.</cite> 

<p>Haimo, on Matt. 28:19, <i>(Bapt. Hist. page</i> 561,)
writes, "In this place the order how to baptize aright is
pointed out to us; in which it is ordained, that teaching must
precede baptism, for he says</p>

<p>'Teach all nations;' and then adds: 'baptizing them.' He,
then, that is to be baptized, must previously be instructed,
that he may first learn faith, which he shall afterwards
receive in baptism."</p>

<p>How could any one give clearer testimony concerning the true
baptism of Jesus Christ? How, also, could anybody more plainly
reject infant baptism, than by such a declaration? Every word
emphatically says it.</p>

<p>He begins with Matt. 28:19, where the Lord says, "Go ye
therefore, and teach," or, in other words make disciples of;
which he explains thus</p>

<p><i>"that teaching must precede baptism;"</i> for the Lord
first says: <i>teach,</i> and then, <i>baptize,</i> and that
therefore he that is to be baptized, must first be instructed,
and learn the faith. Certainly, these are things which pertain
only to the adult and intelligent, hence it would be <i>sinning
against</i> the truth to apply them to unintelligent
infants.</p>

<p>Haimo <i>(Sean. Domin,</i> 12, <i>Trinit., page</i> 564)
says, "Since those who are baptized, must first be enlightened
with the grace of the Holy Spirit, then instructed by the
teachers, and finally called to confess the faith, hence arises
the custom that," etc.</p>

<p>This accords fully with the preceding; fox he declares the
same still more plainly, since here not only instructing is
joined to baptizing, but the illumination of the Holy Spirit,
the instruction of the teachers, and the confession of the
faith are connected with, yea, required before baptism; which
is so clear, according to the purport of the first declaration,
that it is unnecessary to add another word; the impartial may
judge. As to what he further says in the same place, concerning
the touching of the tongue, the saying of the word
<i>Hephphatha,</i> etc., we leave as it is, neither praising
nor censuring it, since it is of little consequence, if the
truth and the signification of the matter is rightly
preserved.</p>

<p>Haimo, on Rom. 1 <i>(page 542),</i> writes, "At the time of
baptism we confess that we believe on God the Father, and on
the Lord Jesus Christ, and on the Holy Ghost; likewise, that we
renounce the devil and all his pomp and works. If we observe
this thus, we belong to God in faith; but if we do not, we are
convinced of unbelief."*</p>

<p>A little before, in his exposition of Rom. 6 <i>(page
540),</i> he makes mention of four different</p>

<br /><cite>* A.D. 821 (writes P. J. Twisk), that is, in the
time of the Roman Emperor Louis, there lived Christus
Taurinensus, who wrote and taught against the invocation of the
images, of the cross, of the relics, of the saints and against
the power of the Pope, and pilgrimages.-Chron., 9th book, page
280, col. 2, from job. Munst., fol. 132.</cite> 

</div><div id="235"> 

<p>baptisms: 1. In the water only, as was John's baptism. 2. In
fire and the Spirit, with which the apostles were baptized on
the day of Pentecost. 3. In water and the Spirit, which baptism
then obtained in the church. 4. In the shedding of the blood
with which the Lord Himself and all the holy martyrs were
baptized.</p>

<p>These four different baptisms can pertain to none but the
intelligent and believing; for, as regards the first, namely,
John's baptism, it is expressly stated that those to whom it
was administered, confessed their sins and repented. Matt. 3:6,
8, 11. As to the second, namely, the baptism of fire and the
Holy Ghost, which was administered to the apostles by God
Himself from heaven, this did not at all relate to infants,
seeing that all who were thus baptized, spake with tongues and
magnified God. Acts 2:3, 4. Concerning the third, namely, the
baptism in water and the Spirit, which then obtained in the
church, this likewise could not be peculiar to infants, since
the fruits of the Holy Ghost, without which the Holy Ghost
cannot be, do in no wise appear in them. See Gal. 5:22.
Respecting the fourth, namely, the baptism by the shedding of
blood, this, according to his statement, is peculiar only to
Christ and the martyrs; consequently it cannot be regarded as
applying to infants, for these do not even know of
<i>confessing Christ,</i> much less of suffering one's blood to
be shed for His name's sake, and of dying in constancy.</p>

<p>Continuing, he shows in the same place (Rom. 6) that in him
that is to be baptized, there must be three invisible things:
1. Faith. 2. The soul, which is washed from sin. 3. The Holy
Ghost, by whose co-operation the forgiveness of sins is
imparted. We would explain these things more fully; but since
this is a passage expressed in almost the very words which
Albinus, in the preceding century, for the year 792, wrote (on
John 15), of which, we gave an explanation, we will, to avoid
repetition, take leave therefrom, referring the reader to said
explanation.</p>

<p>Haimo teaches, on Canticles 4 <i>(page</i> 544), that all
who desire to become brethren must be baptized, saying, "Without
the washing of baptism, no one can be a true believer."</p>

<p>What else is this than what the holy Scripture teaches,
namely, that in baptism we put on Christ? and that by faith
(which is professed in baptism) we become the children of God?
Paul says, "Ye are all the children of God by faith in Christ
Jesus. For as many of you as have been baptized have put on
Christ" (Gal. 3:26, 27).</p>

<p>But someone may think: Haimo speaks of becoming brethren by
baptism; whereas Paul speaks of becoming children of God, of
putting on Christ, etc. True, beloved reader; but who, with
only a little experience in the holy Scriptures, knows not that
to be a child of God, or to be a brother of the church of
Christ, is one and the same thing? Cer ainly, it is the same;
for the same Spirit that make us children of God, also makes us
brethren of Christ, yea, joint heirs with Him. Rom. 8:15-17.
For this reason, Christ calls them both His brethren and His
children, saying, "I will declare thy name unto my brethren, in
the midst of the church will I sing praise unto thee." And
again, "Behold, here am I and the children which God hath given
me." Hell. 2:12, 13. Who now shall say that Haimo, who calls
the baptized, brethren, and Paul, who terms them children of
God, contradict each other? Their accordance is sufficiently
proved, and at this we will let it rest.</p>

<p>Of the dignity of baptism, Haimo, on Hos. 2 <i>(page</i>
547), says, "Baptism is sanctified by faith in the sufferings of
our Lord.", "What doth hinder me to be baptized?" said the Ethiopian to
Philip. Philip replied, "If thou believest with all thine heart,
thou mayest" (Acts 8: 36, 37); indicating that, in order to
receive baptism worthily, sincere faith is required, by which
baptism is sanctified, which is just what Haimo has expressed
in the above words; and thus his words agree with those of the
holy Scripture which we have quoted .*</p>

<p>The righteous, Haimo says, on Ps. 38 <i>(page</i> 548), "Live
in baptism, <i>in</i> which they die unto sin and the .
world."</p>

<p>Again, on Ps. 136, he says, "By the Red Sea we understand
holy baptism, which (so to speak) is red, being sanctified
through the blood of Christ," and a little further on, "By the
impartation of the same, the believers begin (to proceed) in
the way by which they come to God."</p>

<p>On Zech. 13 he says, "When we receive the faith, we are
regenerated in Christ, and in baptism we are washed from all
our sins; and they that through faith are regenerated in
baptism, are made children of God.</p>

<p>Again, on Cant. 1, he speaks thus, "As Israel was preserved
in the Red Sea, but Pharaoh drowned, even so the church of the
Gentiles, by baptism, is delivered from the bondage of the
devil, and led into the true land of promise, to the liberty of
the Gospel; thus she who was formerly an handmaid of iniquity,
is become a friendt [beloved] of Christ, cleansed and washed,
by baptism, from the filth of sin."</p>

<p>These passages are like the jets of a fountain, which,
though they shoot forth in different places, proceed from one
source. In the first passage, it is said of the righteous, that
they"live in baptism, yea, die unto sin and the world." The
life spoken of here signifies a spiritual life, and is
contrasted with death, which comes by sin; the dying unto sin
and the world, signifies a forsaking and renounc-</p>

<br /><cite>* The following passages by Haimo from Ps. 38,
to Cant. 1, are apparently quoted by Idiota.-Bapt. Hist., pages
547, 548.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* In the Dutch translation of the Bible, in the
Book of Canticles, the word corresponding to"love, whenever
this is applied as a term of endearment to the church, by
Christ, is"vriendinne," i. e., friend; hence the allusion is
not so apparent in the passage as translated here into
English.-Translator.</cite> 

</div><div id="236"> 

<p>ing of the same, which can be done only by those who
previously adhered to, and loved, sin and the world.</p>

<p>In the second passage, baptism is compared to the Red Sea,
and it is said that"by the impartation of the same, the
believers proceed." But is not this the very thing which Paul
spoke of the figurative baptism of the believing patriarchs,
saying, "Brethren, I would not that ye should be ignorant, how
that all our fathers were under the cloud, and all passed
through the (Red) sea; and were all baptized unto Moses in the
cloud and in the sea" (I Cor. 10:1, 2); which is not to be
understood of infants that were wont to be carried, but of
adult persons, who were able to proceed and walk.</p>

<p>In the third passage, faith, regeneration, baptism, and
being made children of God, are joined together."They that
through faith are regenerated in baptism, are made children of
God," he writes. But how can this be interpreted otherwise,
than with reference to intelligent persons, who, having
attained to faith, by the hearing of the Word of God, are
regenerated, and, in token thereof, baptized, and adopted as
children of God into His church? Faith certainly comes by
hearing, and hearing by the Word of God. Rom. 10:17.
Regeneration takes place after the death of the first birth, or
after the mortifying of the old man. John 3:4, 5; Rom. 6:4.
Baptism is administered to the believing and regenerated, as a
sign of faith,and regeneration. Acts 8:37; Tit. 3:5. Those are
made children of God, who, through faith, have put on Christ,
and, in proof of this, have been baptized. John 1:12, compared
with Gal. 3:26, 27. Judge now, whether these are things that
can be done by new-born infants. I am fully confident that you
will say: No. Yet, these things are connected with baptism, not
only by Haimo, but principally by God, in the holy Scriptures;
yea, without them, baptism is of no value. Hence we say, "What
God has joined together, let not man put asunder" (Matt.
19:6).</p>

<p>In the fourth passage it is said, that"The church of the
Gentiles, by baptism, is delivered from the bondage of the
devil," and that"she who was a handmaid of iniquity, is (thus)
become a friend [beloved] of Christ." This certainly savors not
at all of infant baptism, for it cannot be said of infants,
that they are the church of the Gentiles, under the bondage of
the devil, a handmaid of iniquity, nor that they, by baptism,
are delivered from the service of the devil, and become a
friend of Christ. Certainly, no one can be delivered from the
service of the devil, but he who has served the devil; no other
can be liberated from the servitude of iniquity except she who
previously committed iniquity; she who previously blasphemed;
no other can be adopted as a friend of Christ, than she who
formerly, by wicked works, was at enmity with Christ;
consequently it is indisputable, that this cannot be understood
of infants, seeing these things can have no place with them;
this even those who maintain infant baptism, must admit, and
hence we dismiss the subject., "The adult (candidates) also made confession of their sins,
and a penance was imposed on them, for forty, twenty or seven
days." <i>Haimo, on Heb.</i> 6. (cent;. 552).</p>

<p>Here adult and not infant candidates are spoken of, yea,
such, upon whom, when they had made confession of sins, a
penance (or amendment of life) was imposed; which are things
pertaining to adults, and not to little children; this is too
plain to be refuted.</p>

<p>Said baptism was so firmly maintained and thus valued by
Haimo, that he held that it should never be repeated, if it had
been administered according to the rule of the holy Scriptures;
for, treating of the 6th chapter of Romans, he says, by way of
exposition, "If we have once died unto sin in baptism, we may
not be baptized again." <i>Bapt. Hist.,</i> p. 543. This well
accords with the custom of the Anabaptists of the present day;
for, though they rebaptize such as have been baptized in their
infancy, when they attain to the faith; regarding the baptism
which is received in infancy as no baptism at all, because it
is not according to holy Scripture; yet no one is rebaptized by
them, who has been <i>baptised aright,</i> that is, upon
faith.</p>

<p>NOTE. A. <i>D.</i> 825.-The council held at Paris, A. D.
825, decreed against image worship. <i>Sam. Veltius,
Geslacht-register, page</i> 127. Gratian said to his
contemporaries, "The Lord, in saying to His disciples: 'When
they persecute you in this city, flee ye into another,' teaches
that Christians when persecuted, should not repel weapon with
weapon, but flee therefrom." See <i>Grondelijke Verklaringe
Danielis ende Johannis,</i> printed at Harlem, in the year
1635, p. 56.</p>

<p>A. D. 830.*-It is stated that A. D. 830, in the sixteenth
year of the reign of Emperor Louis 1, surnamed the Pious, there
shone forth as a bright light, and wrote, one Rabanus Maurus,
residing at Fulda, who, among various things written by him
against the Roman church, also speaks of baptism, in the
discussion of which he throughout employs such language as
pertains only to believers, and in no wise to infants;
notwithstanding he at one time, it appears, had been a
maintainer of infant baptism, and many other superstitions of
popery, so much so that he had been an abbot. But passing this
by, we shall show what he wrote of baptism, and how closely it
agrees with the teaching of the holy Scriptures.</p>

<p>In Jacob Mehrning's history of baptism, various passages
from Rabanus Maurus are adduced, some of which, it is
suspected, have been attributed to him unjustly, or, at least,
that, if he has written them, he wrote them before he was
enlightened nr converted; as, among others, in <i>lib. 2, de
Proprit.</i></p>

<br /><cite>* The proper time for baptizing was still Easter
and Whitsuntide.-Bapt. Hist.. page 550 num. 2. White garments
were put on those baptized. which signified the innocence,
salvation and purity of the Christian; that they should
henceforth, all through life, keep themselves unspotted from
iniquity.-Page 553, num. 14.</cite> 

</div><div id="237"> 

<p><i>Serm., cap. 200; again,. lib. 4, cap. 10; of</i> which we
let the intelligent judge.</p>

<p>Nevertheless various things are found, which, we doubt not,
are justly ascribed to him, as, for instance: Of the
instruction of the catechumens before baptism, and how the
novices ought to learn the faith before they are baptized. In
<i>Decretis de Consecrat. dirt. 4, cap. Ante Bapt., ex Rabalno,
Bapt. Hist., page 560.</i> Likewise, the quotation made by
Vicecomes <i>(lib. 2, cap. 40)</i> from Rabanus <i>(in lib. de
instruct. Cleric.),</i> which reads as follows, "The order
according to which the catechumens are prepared for baptism, is
this: First they are interrogated whether they renounce the
devil," etc. <i>Bapt. Hist., page 562.</i> The rest we
omit.</p>

<p>By this he indicates, that in his time, in the church of
which he was a member, the custom of preparing the novices for
baptism was still observed, inasmuch as first, the instruction
of the faith, called the catechism, was presented and taught
them; also, that they had to renounce Satan, &amp;c.; which was
observed not only at this time, but in nearly all the preceding
times, as appears from this passage, "They are wont to renounce
the devil with his works and pomp." <i>Syn. Turon. Bapt. Hist.,
page 516, num. 7.</i></p>

<p>That in the time of Rabanus the instruction of novices
extended not only to those of heathen descent, but also to such
as were born of Christian parents, is declared by Jacob
Mehrning, <i>Bapt. Hist., page 560, contra Rulichium.</i></p>

<p>D. Vicecomes <i>(lib. 3, cap. 9),</i> quotes from Rabanus
Maurus <i>(page 562), "The</i> fellow petitioners for baptism
are those who, through the doctrine of the faith, and by
refraining from disorderly conduct, make haste to receive the
grace of Christ in baptism."</p>

<p>This confirms our former assertion, namely, that before
baptism a preparation had to be made, in order that it
(baptism) might be received worthily; which preparation is here
called"the doctrine of the faith and refraining from disorderly
conduct." In it are comprised both parts of the doctrine which
John presented to those who came to his baptism, saying, "Repent
ye, and believe," etc. Matt. <i>3:2,</i> compared with Mark
1:<i>15,</i> and Acts <i>19:4.</i></p>

<p>Moreover, they are called fellow petitioners, and it is said
that"They make haste to receive the grace of Christ in
baptism," which are things that cannot be done by infants.</p>

<p>Hence he writes, on Cant. <i>3:6, (page 540):</i> "Who is
this that cometh up white as snow?" applying the same to the
candidates, who, cleansed from their former sins, come up from
baptism, and increase in virtue."This mystery," he says,"is not
otherwise than under the invocation of the Holy Trinity, that
is, in the name of the Father, of the Son, and of the Holy
Ghost; thus the Lord says to the apostles, Matt. <i>28:19:
'Go</i> and teach,"' etc. Hence, when he speaks of coming up
from the water, and of the invocation of the Holy Trinity, as
well as of the passage, Matt. <i>28:19,</i> he sufficiently
shows that he does not speak of the baptism of infants, since
they cannot come up from baptism, nor invoke the Holy Trinity,
nor fulfill the passage, Matt. <i>28;</i> which is too clear to
be refuted. We will therefore briefly conclude this accouat of
Rabanus with that which P. J. Twisck records concerning
him.</p>

<h2>THE VIEWS OF RABANUS MAURUS CONCERNING VARIOUS OTHER ARTICLES OF HIS FAITH, ACCORDING TO THE AFORE-MENTIONED AUTHOR</h2> 

<p>He writes, A. <i>D. 830:</i> "Rabanus, an eminently learned
man writes and says: 'The catechism, that is, the doctrine of
the faith, shall precede baptism, so that the candidate
(catechumen) may first learn the first principles of the
faith.'"</p>

<p>He further says, "The Lord Christ first anointed the eyes of
the man born blind, with clay made of spittle, before He sent
him to the water <i>of Si</i>loam; therefore, the candidate
shall first be instructed in the faith of the incarnation of
Christ, and, if he then believes, admitted to baptism; that he
may know what grace he obtains in baptism, and to whom he owes
his service for it."</p>

<p>Again:."Rabanus writes also, that in the sacrament the
language is figurative, and that Christ, having gone to heaven
(in order that we being regenerated by faith, should long the
more ardently for Him) left us this sacrament, as a visible
figure and symbol of His flesh and blood, so that we the more
abundantly, might apprehend in faith the invisible things."
This language, Twisck writes, the Roman church now greatly
curses., "He also taught contrary to the Roman. church, of the
authority of the holy Scriptures, of justification, repentance,
the state of the soul after this life, and against other* papal
errors, as his books testify., "The same thing was done at this time, by Angelomus, who
treated of the grace of God, good works, and the keys of the
church, in opposition to the pope. <i>Chron., 9th book, page
283,</i> from <i>John Munst., fol. 120, 133. John Boea., lib.
4, Grond. Bevijs, letter A. Chron. Seb. Franck, fol. 77, Casp.
Swinck, fol. 115.</i></p>

<p><i>Same year as above.-This Angelomus</i> just mentioned is
referred to in <i>Jacob Mehrning's History of Baptism,</i> in
which it is stated that, besides the afore-mentioned views held
by him contrary to the Roman church, he left the following
testimony with regard to the matter of baptism:</p>

<p><i>Angelomus (in cap. 7, lib. 3, Reg. 1, page 548),</i>
says, "From all that we have sinned with the, " Twisck might have used a less ambiguous phrase here,
though we doubt not, that the intelligent reader will readily
see what he means; but for fear that some one might
misunderstand him, we will add a few words of explanation. The
word"other," of course, implies that some errors have already
been adduced; strictly speaking, however, he has not adduced
the errors, but rather the articles of faith in regard to which
errors were held, by the Roman church. -Translator.</p>

</div><div id="238"> 

<p>sight, hearing, smelling, tasting and feeling, we are
redeemed through the grace of God, by the washing of the living
fountain of water (that is, waterbaptism). But the forgiveness
of previous sins is not enough, if we are.not diligent to lay
up good works: for, otherwise, the devil who was gone out of
the man, finding him empty of good works, returns, manifold,
and makes the last state of that man worse than the first.</p>

<p>Hence, when Angelomus here speaks of the sins which before
baptism were committed through the senses, as, through the
sight, hearing, smelling, tasting, and feeling, he certainly
indicates thereby, that the persons of whom he speaks, are not
unintelligent infants, seeing these can neither use nor abuse
their senses, and, consequently, as long as they lack the
knowledge and power, they can not sin with them..</p>

<p>Hence it also appears that the baptism of which he speaks,
is not infant baptism; for this can have no regard to sins
committed previously through the abuse of the senses. The
baptism in question, then, is such a baptism as is received by
persons who can lay aside previous sins, and lay up good works;
who also give no room to the devil gone out of them, that the
last state may not be worse than the first; for of all this,
Angelomus speaks. We will, therefore, leave this, and proceed
to other testimonies serving the same purpose.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 840.-That at this time not only baptism, but
also various other articles of Christian doctrine were
maintained contrary to the belief of the Roman church. P. J.
Twisek indicates, in his <i>Chronijk.,</i> for the year 840,
with these words, "Bertram, a courageous and learned man, now
vigorously assailed the doctrine of transubstantiation, in a
remarkable book, dedicated to the King of France. H.eymon,
Bishop of Halberstadt, also contended against this doctrine,
and wrote much of baptism, the Supper, justification, good
works, and of the church and her office, in opposition to the
opinion of the papists. Also Walafrid opposed the new doctrine
of the Romanists very vigor -<i>ously.* P. J. Twisck, Chran.,
9th book, page</i> 286, eol. 2, and <i>page</i> 287, col. 1,
from <i>Joh. Munst., fol.</i> 129, and 132.</p>

<p><i>A.</i> D. 841.-It is recorded that at this time, in the
reign of the Emperors Louis and Lothaire, a council was held at
Paris, concerning which it is written <i>(chap.</i> 6), "In the
beginning of the holy church of God, no one was admitted to
receive bap-</p>

<br /><cite>* About this time, Bertram taught, in his book
of the"Body and Blood of Christ," concerning the words, "This is
my body," that this is to be understood figuratively, and that
in the Supper, the faith is presented somewhat differently than
the eyes externally see, and the taste perceives; also, that
the bread and wine are figuratively the body and blood of
hrist, and represent to, or keep before us, the remembrance of
the sufferings and death of Christ.-Sam. Velt.,
Geslacht-register, pages 126, 127.</cite> 

<p>In the Scythian church, (A.D. 840), writes Valfrid Abbas,
they used the common mother tongue, and taught that images
should not be worshiped 4r honored; that the paschal lamb
should not be consecrated; yea, that it was better to aid the
poor, than to decorate the churches.-P. J. Twisck, Chron., 9th
book, page 286, col. 2, from Casp. Grev., fol. 277. ism, who
had not previously been instructed in the faith, and in the
mystery of baptism, as is testified by the words of Paul, Rom.
6:3: 'Know ye not, that so many of us as were baptized into
Jesus Christ were baptized into his death?' which passage of
the apostle has reference to the sacrament of baptism."</p>

<p>In the council of Laodicea (Tit. 46), it is also written,
that"those who desire to come to baptism, shall learn the
faith, and recite the same to the bishop or teacher, on the
fifth day of the great week."</p>

<p>Again <i>(Tit.</i> 47), "That those who were baptized in
sickness, shall, after recovery, diligently study their faith
and know what great grace they have received; which words
plainly indicate, that those who attain to the Christian faith,
are also previously instructed concerning said faith and the
mysteries of baptism. But now, sad to relate, also the infants
of Christian parents are baptized, who, on account of their
tender age, cannot comprehend this matter, which to learn even
persons of understanding must exert themselves diligently, and
which, owing to the negligence of some, has gone out of use in
the Christian church. Oh, what great neglectl Oh, what great
mischief." <i>Jacob Mehrning, Bapt. Hist., page</i> 538.</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 842.-It is stated that at this time a
number of slaves who had become converted were baptized, yet
not in the Roman manner, nor in the Roman language, as was
customary with the Roman church, as well as with all other
churches which adhered to the Roman see; but in a different
manner and in another language; so that it appears from this
occurrence that this church must hive been separated from the
superstitions of the Roman church not only in forms, but also,
as may be inferred, in faith and practice. To this, the
following annotation <i>(Bapt. Hist., page 552, nuns.</i> 9),
among others, has reference, "They (those of the Roman church)
used the Roman language not only in Italy, but also in other
regions that were subject to the papal power; but that baptism
was administered also in other languages, is proved by the
history of the conversion of the slaves."* <i>Ex. Historia
Sclav.</i></p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 848.-That the instruction of novices,
before baptism, obtained also at this time, <i>Jacob Mehrning,
Bapt. Hist., pag 550,</i> informs us with these words, "The
adults had (then) to be instructed in the faith, and were
catechized before baptism, as has been proved above, from
Rabanus, Haimo, and others; thereupon they had to confess the
faith, as Rabanus <i>(lib. 1, de Cleric. Institutione, cap.
27)</i> relates. They were asked, whether they believed in God
the Father, the Almighty, and on His only Son, our Lord, and on
the Holy Ghost, a general (Christian) church, forgiveness of
sins,</p>

<br /><cite>* A.D. 843.-Christus I,upim, at Ferrara, refuted
the new Roman doctrines concermng purgatory, matrimony of
priests, and other points.--'P. J Twisck, Chron., 9th book,
page 288, col. 1, from Catal. Test., fol. 103.</cite> 

</div><div id="239"> 

<p>resurrection of the flesh," etc.* <i>Bapt. Hist., p.
550,</i> nuln. 4.</p>

<p>These were good and salutary customs for the upbuilding of
the church of God; by which the name of the Lord was praised,
the church edified, the Word of God most strictly observed, and
the salvation of many promoted. But the ancient saying, "Where
God builds a temple, Satan builds one in opposition to it," was
also verified here; for, at the same time that those who loved
the truth, baptized believers, upon the confession of their
faith, nearly all the others, who were called Roman or Greek
Christians, baptized infants, who, as every one knows can
neither believe nor confess the faith; this has been referred
to above.</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 854.-It is stated that very near the time
of Haimo, there lived and wrote Idiota. In <i>I. Mehrning's
History of Baptism is</i> found a quotation by him, relating to
baptism, which reads as follows, "In holy baptism we accept
Christ for our bridegroom, and enter His chamber, which is
ornamented with manifold graces and virtues." <i>De Innocentia,
cap.</i> 3.</p>

<p>To accept Christ for one's bridegroom, to enter His chamber,
is certainly not the work of children, but of believers. Those
accept Christ for their bridegroom, who betroth themselves to
Him by faith, and in token thereof, are baptized. John 3:26,
29. Those enter His chamber, who, through obedience, join
themselves to His church; for they are no more"strangers and
foreigners but fellowcitizens with the saints, and of the
household of God." Eph. 2:18.</p>

<p>That which is further said of the chamber of the bridegroom,
namely, that it is ornamented with graces and virtues, has
reference to the spiritual ornament of the church of God, which
latter is the true chamber of our heavenly bridegroom Jesus
Christ. This church of God cannot be ornamented with graces and
virtues by infants, seeing infants are ornamented with neither
actual graces nor real virtues; hence, it has also respect to
the believers, who, having come, through baptism, to the church
of God, ornament the same with actual graces and real virtues.
This concludes our exposition of the passage of Idiota.</p>

<p>NOTE. <i>A. D.</i> 859.-Huldricus or Uldoricus, Bishop of
Augsburg, greatly complained of the violence of the popes, and
said, "What will become of this flock, when the shepherds become
wolves?" He openly maintained that the pope was fallible, and
that it was lawful to admonish him for his error, and to reject
his bad decrees. <i>P. J. Twisck, Chron.,</i> 9th <i>book,
page</i> 298, col. 1, from <i>Merula, fol.</i> 177. <i>Jan.
Crespin, fol.</i> 211, 215, 216.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 860.-At this time, there departed from the
belief and practice of infant baptism, Hincmar, at one time
Bishop of Laudun, inasmuch as he</p>

<p>A.D. 858.-At this time, Gunther, Bishop of
Cologne, wrote to Pope Nicholas, "Thou art playing the tyrant:
under the guise of a shepherd we find thee to be a wolf. The
title, indeed, is father, but virtually thou showest thyself a
Jupiter."-Sm. Vetius, Geslachtregister, page 127. would no
longer baptize children, so that they grew up without baptism,
and many also, who did not attain the years of understanding,
died unbaptized; on account of which he was then greatly
accused by Hincmar, Bishop of Rheims, who to this end, wrote to
him as follows, "And thou, who knowest that it is true what the
Lord says: 'Except a man be born of water, and of the Spirit,
he cannot enter into the kingdom of heaven;' hast nevertheless
commanded, that infants shall not be baptized in thy church,
not even when in peril of death, so that they should not be
saved, though it is written: 'The Son of man is not come to
destroy men's lives, but to save them.' Thou hast also acted
contrary to the decrees of Syricius, Leo, Gelasius, and the
African council, as I have informed thee now twice by writing."
H. <i>Mont. Nietigh., page</i> 81, ex Bi6<i>ioth, Patr.,
Tom.</i> 9, past 2, page 137. <i>Cent. 1</i>17agd., <i>Cent.
9,</i> cap. 4, pages 40, 41.</p>

<p>In another letter, the Bishop of Rheims with entreating, and
not less earnest words, endeavors to draw him away from his
belief, writing, "Desist from preaching this (namely, that
infants may not be baptized), the mere thought of which is
awful; desist from scattering the flock of Christ (meaning
thereby, through error, the Roman church), lest the destruction
of all the people come upon thee; and do not, from excessive
love for thy belief, sever thyself from," etc. <i>H. Mont.,</i>
page 82, from <i>Cent. Magd., Cent.</i> 9, <i>pages</i> 157,
158. Also, Bapt. Hist. <i>page</i> 545.</p>

<p>From these two letters it appears that Hincmar, Bishop of
Laudun, had not only departed from the doctrine of infant
baptism, but also earnestly preached against it, so that many
of the Roman church, particularly at Laudun, became his
adherents; for, what did the Bishop of Rheims mean by
writing, "Desist from preaching this," but to say that Hincmar
of Laudun should cease preaching against infant baptism? What
else does he indicate when he says, "Desist from scattering the
flock of Christ, lest the destruction of all the people come
upon thee?" Certainly, these words indicate that many had
already left the Roman church on this account, yea, that the
state of things was such that all the people at Laudun adhered
to this doctrine.</p>

<p>Moreover, from the last letter we see, how firmly, and
almost immovably, said Hincmar must have stood, at Laudun, in
his doctrine and belief against infant baptism, seeing such
great endeavors were made to draw him away; now by presenting
his belief in the most odious light, as though he preached
things the mere thought of which was awful; now by
flattery, "And do not, from excessive love for thy belief, sever
thyself from," etc. But whether through this he was in any wise
turned away from his belief, we have not been able to
ascertain; hence we will let the matter rest.</p>

<p>In reference to what he may have tau-,ht with regard to
other points, we can, on account of the default of history,
give nothing certain; it is sufficient for us, that in those
perilous times he dared</p>

</div><div id="240"> 

<p>oppose the common Roman church, by rejecting infant baptism,
and that much people adhered to him therein, as has been shown
above.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 867.-We have now come to the year in which an
uncommon and quite unexpected matter is mentioned by ancient
writers, of which we will forthwith give an account. Just now,
for the year 860, we told of a certain champion of the Roman
superstitions, especially of infant baptism, namely, Hancmar,
Bishop of Rheims, who, once and again, by express letters,
immoderately accused another Hincmar, Bishop of Laudun, because
the latter refused to baptize infants, and would also not allow
them to be baptized, though they were in danger of dying. This
same person now, seven years after making the above accusations
respecting the nonbaptizing of infants, opposed the pope, not
only in one point, but in many, among which infant baptism may
also have been. Concerning this P. J. Twisck, from other
authors, writes thus, "Hincmar, Bishop of Rheims, opposed Pope
Adrian II in many points, in defense of the truth. He charged
him with innovation, saying that he could not be bishop and
king at the same time; that he should have nothing to do with
secular affairs." <i>Chron., 9th book, page</i> 305, col. 2,
from <i>Hist. Georg., fol.</i> 314, <i>Catal. Test., fol.</i>
52.</p>

<p>It is a pity and to be lamented, that the ancients have not
left us more information regarding the particular points
maintained by Hincmar, Bishop of Rheims, against the pope, and,
consequently, also against the Roman church.</p>

<p>It would not be very surprising, if among the points
maintained by him against the pope, the denial of infant
baptism was one; for, when he, seven years before that, accused
Hincmar, Bishop of Laudun, for not baptizing the infants, the
latter apparently, either from the holy Scriptures, or by
conclusive arguments, demonstrated to him the groundlessness
and vanity of infant baptism in such a manner that he may
easily have attained to very different views, not only in
regard to infant baptism, but also in other points which were
maintained after the manner of the papists. But as this is not
clearly indicated, we will not discuss it any further, but
leave it as a probable conjecture. Moreover, it is not our
purpose to justify said bishop in every article of religion,
nor to declare him orthodox on the whole; but to show that the
same person who had previously so stoutly defended the Roman
church and the papal superstitions, especially in the matter of
infant baptism, now dared attack not only the Roman church, but
even the pope, who is called its head, and to oppose him in
many points, as has been shown. With this we take our leave of
Hincmar of Rheims.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 880.-At this time there lived Paschasius, a
remarkably experienced and virtuous man, who wrote various
things against the belief of the Roman church; but as the
thread of our account extends only, or, at least, principally,
over the matter of baptism. we will also here turn our special
atten ion to the same, and, so as not to be encumbered with
many testimonies, present but one passage of his belief with
reference to this.matter, as recorded in Jacob Mehrning's
history of baptism.</p>

<p>Paschasius <i>(de Corp. and Sang. Dom., cap. 10, page</i>
594) says, "In the sacrament of baptism the door is opened to
believers, to enter into the sonship of God, that we, being
delivered from evil through this regeneration, may afterwards
become one body with the members of Christ; in which baptism,
when the Holy Ghost is shed abroad in the souls of the
regenerated, the whole church of Christ is quickened, and
becomes one body, by one Spirit received by all."</p>

<p>Here he indicates three things incompatible with infant
baptism. Firstly, when he says that"In the sacrament of baptism
the door is opened to believers, to enter into the sonship of
God." For, that this cannot relate to infants, appears from the
nature of faith and of the believers; as to faith, it is a sure
confidence of the things hoped for. Heb. 11:1. This faith comes
by hearing, and hearing by the Word of God. Rom. 10:17. That
neither this sure confidence, nor hope, nor intelligent hearing
of the Word of God, can have place in infants, is quite
evident, since neither their powers nor their knowledge can
reach these things. See Deut. 1:39; I Cor. 13:11.</p>

<p>Secondly, when he says, "That we, being delivered from evil
through this regeneration, may afterwards become one body with
the members of Christ." For the word regeneration is no where
in Scripture applied to infants, but to adults. John 3:3; Tit.
3:5. Likewise, to be delivered from evil, is applied only to
such persons as, through evil works, were previously ensnared
and held captive by sin. II Tim. 2:26. Hence, the second also
does in no wise apply to infants.</p>

<p>Thirdly, when he, expounding the utility of baptism,
says, "In which baptism, the whole church of Christ is quickened
and becomes one body, by one Spirit received by all." For, when
mention is made here of the quickening Spirit of God, which in
baptism is imparted to the church, or, at least, to those who,
by baptism, are incorporated as members into the church, it
follows almost incontrovertibly, that this relates neither to
infants nor to infant baptism; for, as regards infants, instead
of becoming quickened by the Spirit of God, after baptism, that
is, instead of becoming adorned with all divine and Christian
virtues, we ,see, on the contrary, that they generally, from
that time on, as their powers increase, are led by their own
spirit, so that with the increasing years, perverseness also
increases, yea, sometimes gains the ascendency; hence, those
who have reached their years, are admonished, that they must be
born again, that is, that they must lead another and better
life; or that they cannot enter into the kingdom of God. John
3:5, 7.</p>

<p>This being the case, it stands fast, that Paschasius, in
said passage, speaks neither of infants nor</p>

</div><div id="241"> 

<p>of infant baptism. Leaving this subject here, we will
conclude with the account of P. J. Twisck, who records of
Paschasius, besides what we have stated above, that he mentions
but two sacraments, namely, 1. baptism; 2. the Supper; or, as
it was anciently called, the body and blood of the Lord; which
militates against the seven sacraments of the Roman church. P.
J. <i>Twisck, Chron.,</i> page 310.</p>

<p>Same year as above.--"Remigius," he writes in the same
place,"also taught much against the pope, saying, among other
things: That we must address our prayers not to idols, but to
the living God; and that the church must conform to the holy
Scriptures." <i>Chron., 9th book, page</i> 310, col. 1, from
<i>John Munst., fol.</i> 61, 131, 133. <i>Perk., fol.</i>
249.</p>

<p>In the meantime, the pious were exceedingly oppressed in
this century, by the power of the pope and the Roman clergy; so
that, on account of the smoke of the papistic errors, the fire
of the pure doctrine could not burn freely, which was also the
reason that not more learned and God-fearing men manifested
themselves at that time, in defense of the truth of God.</p>

<p>A. D. 900 --That at this time, some dared oppose not only
infant baptism and other tenets of the Roman church, but even
the Pope of Rome, who might well be called the father of all
superstitions, the example of Tergandus sufficiently indicates,
who, at this time, dared designate him by the name of
antichrist, wolf, etc.; concerning which, Samuel Veltius (from
other authors) has noted the following for,the year
900, "Tergandus, Bishop of Treves, called the Pope of Rome
antichrist, yea, a wolf, and Rome, Babylon."
<i>Geslacht-register, page</i> 128.</p>

<p>NOTE.-We will close with the account of P. J. Twisck, in his
conclusion to the ninth century, "In this century, the
occidental or western, Roman Empire, which has been at a
standstill now for 324 years, begins afresh. The clergy,
through the folly of the Emperor, obtain power to elect popes
and bishops. The Emperors are crowned by the popes, who will
themselves to be the masters and lords and rule before and over
others, as is evident from this, that some times, two, three,
and four popes reign at once and seek to domineer over the
others, expelling, driving away, exhuming, cursing, each other.
Spiritual matters are still greatly on the decline, men seeking
their salvation far more in so-called good works, in ceremonies
and superstitions, than through justification by faith in
Christ Jesus. Disputations about transubstantiation are
inaugurated, though the Supper is still administered under both
forms, that is, with bread and wine. The people, having been to
the supper, offer money or something else."</p>

<p>What he further relates of exorcism at baptism; of the mass;
of the power to canonize saints; of the worship of saints and
images; of the ban of the bishops; of the punishment of
heretics; of the consecration of temples; of purgatory; of
soul-masses, to redeem souls from purgatory, etc., would re
quire too much time to recount. See concerning it, <i>Chron..,
page</i> 320.</p>

<p>This has been told simply to show how and whereby the
orthodox Christians were oppressed at this time in their
worship of God; and why so few learned and pious people
manifested themselves. We will now proceed to show what pious
witnesses of Jesus Christ suffered as martyrs at this time.</p>

<p>NOTE.-A. D. 884.-John Patrick, a man well versed in the
Chaldean, Arabian, and Greek languages, in the monastery of
Mabelsbury, greatly opposed the doctrine of an offering for the
living and the dead; on account of which he was stabbed to
death with awls. See <i>Geslacht-register, page</i> 127.</p>

 

<h1>AN ACCOUNT OF THOSE WHO SUFFERED IN THE NINTH CENTURY: SUMMARY OF THE MARTYRS IN THE NINTH CENTURY</h1>

<p>[The beginning is a repetition of the fourth proposition of
the discourse of Haimo (for the year A. D. 814) respecting
baptism by the shedding of blood, with which the Lord and all
the holy martyrs were baptized.</p>

<p>Of the cruelties instituted by the Danish tyrant, Regnerus
(A. D. 818) against the Christian believers; which matter is
further explained in a note.</p>

<p>In the margin, mention is made that A. D. 826, the Saracens
invaded the islands of the Romans, and, consequently, Creta;
where Cyril, Bishop of the church at Gortina was slain.</p>

<p>The tyranny instituted by the King of Bulgaria against the
Christians, about the year 842, is shown and confirmed by
testimonies.</p>

<p>Great persecution of the believers, caused by the mutual
contentions of the kings in France, noted also for A. D.
842.</p>

<p>Very grievous and lamentable persecution of Christian
believers at Cordova, in Spain, A. D. 850, through the
wickedness of the Saracens. It is shown that said persecution
had commenced long before A. D. 850, but that at this time it
raged the most violently.</p>

<p>The distressing martyrdom of John, a tradesman at Cordova,
A. D. 850. Note respecting the faith of said martyr.</p>

<p>Nunilo and Aloida, sisters and Christian maidens, put to
death with the sword, for the name of the Lord, in the city of
Osca, about A. D. 851.</p>

<p>Marginal note, for the year 852, that then the zeal of some
to die as martyrs, was so great that multitudes of them
confessed Christ, and ran after martyrdom; among whom Emilas
and Hieremias are mentioned, who were beheaded for said reason
however, every one is left to judge for himself.</p>

<p>Aurea, a God-fearing maiden, after many severe trials,
beheaded at Cordova, for the testimony of Jesus Christ, A. D.
856.</p>

</div><div id="242"> 

<p>After adding a note; we prepare to flee from the Mohammedan
persecutions, and turn to England and Italy, where more and
clearer light, has arisen.</p>

<p>Marginal note of Hincmar, Bishop of Laudun, that, through
the hatred of the Bishop of Rheims, and by a certain council
held at Dusiacum about A. D. 866, he was condemned and finally
sent into banishment.</p>

<p>Johannes Erigena, a Scotchman, and hence, called Scotus,
through the instigation of some monks, put to death by his
scholars, for the confession of the evangelical truth, at
Meldum, in England, A. D. 884.</p>

<p>Observations about the time of this history, as well as some
remarks upon the history itself, according to the accounts of
.Carion, P. Melancthon, C. Peucer, Sebastian Franck of Worth,
P. J. Twisck, Caesar Baronius, and A. Mellinus. Finally, his
belief is compared with that of Berengarius, of whom we shall
speak in the eleventh century. Conclusion.]</p>

<p><i>About the year A. D.</i> 814.-In our account of Holy
Baptism for the year 814, we made mention of Haimo, a
celebrated teacher of that day, as well as of some salutary and
good .testimonies, which he left respecting the baptism of
believers. Writing on Rom. 6, he treats of four different kinds
of baptism, the fourth or last of which he calls <i>baptism by
the shedding</i> of <i>blood,</i> indicating withal, what he
means thereby, as well as what persons were baptized in this
manner. The fourth (baptism), he says,"is by the shedding of
blood; with which the Lord Himself and all holy martyrs were
baptized." B. <i>H., 2d part, page 540, num. 2,</i> from
<i>Centur. Magd. IX., cap. 4,</i> fol. <i>75.</i></p>

<p>Someone perhaps may think that in this passage by Haimo,
nothing is said of a present persecution or martyrdom, but that
it is simply shown that the shedding of the blood of the
martyrs can, in some measure, be called a baptism, with which
the Lord Himself and many of His followers, namely, all the
holy martyrs, had, so to speak, been baptized. To this we will
offer no objection, for it is well remarked; nevertheless, it
will throw light upon the object we have in view, namely, to
show the martyrdom of this time. Hence, in order to reach this
end, we say: It would not have been necessary then only to
recount to the hearers the shedding of the blood of the
martyrs, as well as that in a certain way this may be called a
baptism, if at that time the exigency of martyrdom or the
shedding of blood for the Lord's sake had not existed, or, at
least, if there had been no danger of being persecuted or
martyred.</p>

<p>Certainly, all good teachers regard the opportuneness of the
times, the condition of persons, and other circumstances, in
the matter of teaching, lest the salutary and good words of
God, by being spoken at the wrong time, or on an unsuitable
occasion, should prove void, powerless, and vain to those who
hear it. Thus we must believe that also said teacher (Haimo)
proceeded, and that, consequently, when he called the shedding
of the blood of the martyrs a baptism, and adduced this for the
purpose of instructing his brethren, there must have been an
exigency of martyrdom, either at the time, or near at hand;
otherwise the assertion and exposition of this excellent
teacher would not have been adduced properly, or at the right
time and on the proper occasion.</p>

<p>We shall, therefore, ascertain from other authors the
condition of that time, and whether then or shortly after, any
persecution, bloodshedding or martyrdom arose against the
Christian believers, to which the afore-mentioned teacher might
have had reference in his instruction touching said matter.</p>

<h2>TOUCHING THE CRUELTIES INSTITUTED BY THE DANISH TYRANT REGNERUS AGAINST THE CHRISTIAN BELIEVERS, ABOUT A. D. 818</h2> 

<p>Four years after the admonition of the aforenamed teacher,
namely, A. D. 818, mention is made of a certain Danish tyrant,
called Regnerus, the sixty-second king of Denmark; who, as
regards military affairs, was greatly praised by the champions
of war, but, with regard to his cruelty and tyranny towards the
Christian believers, deserves to be utterly contemned, yea,
counted a tyrant and a blood-thirsty monster.</p>

<p>Concerning this;- P. J. Twisck (from various other writers)
has left the following as a summary of his wickedness, and how
he was punished for it, as a warning to all tyrants."King
Regnerus was a prodigy in matters of war, but a great enemy and
persecutor of the Christians. He was conquered by Hella, king
of the Britons, and cast into a pool of snakes, to be killed in
this manner." <i>Chron. 9th book, page</i> 280.</p>

<p>NOTE.-We have not been able to learn in particular the
manner in which said tyrant manifested his enmity against the
Christians, or how he persecuted them; nor the countries and
places in which those persecutions occurred; nor the names of
the persons who then suffered; nor how long these persecutions
and martyrdoms lasted; hence we cannot more fully speak of
these things.</p>

<p>In the meantime, it is our firm conviction, that not a few
upright professors of Jesus Christ laid down their lives for
the apprehended and accepted truth of the holy Gospel, and were
offered up as steadfast martyrs for their love to their
Saviour, and for the working out of their own salvation. But
for the want of their particular confessions and names, we are
constrained to break off, as we have had to do in several
places in preceding centuries; which things can be compared
with the account we have given here; which we commit to the
intelligent and impartial reader.</p>

<p>About A. D. 826, the Saracens invaded the islands of the
Romans, and took possession of Crete</p>

</div><div id="243"> 

<p>(where Paul had ordained his beloved spirtual son Titus
bishop and shepherd of the church), and put to death, Cyril,
the bishop of the church of Gortina, for confessing Christ.
Compare A. <i>Mell., 2d book, fol. 306, col. 2,</i> with
Zonar., Torn. <i>3, in Michaele Balbo Cedren.</i></p>

<h2>TOUCHING THE TYRANNY INSTITUTED BY THE KING OF BULGARIA AGAINST THE CHRISTIANS, ABOUT A. D. <i>842</i></h2> 

<p>When the afore-mentioned tyrant Regnerus, who commenced to
reign about A. D. <i>818,</i> had died, in the year <i>832,</i>
having been cast among the snakes, and the Christian believers
in the devastated regions, had obtained, it seems, some freedom
in the matter, of living according to their faith, there arose
against them, ten years afterwards, namely, A. D. <i>842,</i>
another miscreant, no better, to all appearance, than the
former, though for a time he had borne the name of a Christian,
who instituted great tyranny against them.</p>

<p>The last-mentioned author, proceeding to the year
<i>842,</i> speaks in his account concerning this matter as
follows, "When this king of the Bulgarians had received the
kingdom from his father, who wished to retire into privacy, he
apostatized from the (Roman) Christian faith to heathen
idolatry, and re-established the latter, with much tyranny
against the Christians. <i>Chron., 9th book, page 287, col.
1,</i> from <i>Hist. 4ndra, fol. 182. Leon., lib. 4,</i> fol.
<i>176.</i> Compare this with the above note.</p>

<h2>GREAT PERSECUTION OF THE BELIEVERS, CAUSED BY THE MUTUAL CONTENTIONS OF THE KINGS IN FRANCE, IN SAID YEAR <i>842</i></h2> 

<p>In the same year in which the above-mentioned Bulgarian
tyrant reigned and instituted so much wickedness against the
Christian believers, namely, A. D. <i>842,</i> the kings of the
Franks, through their wars, though they were brothers, it
appears, grievously persecuted and martyred the poor believers,
everywhere in the French territories; so that said persecution
and martyrdom is compared and regarded as equal to the
persecutions instituted in earlier times by the heathen
emperors. Of this, the following is found in the last-mentioned
chronicle, and in the same place, "The fraternal wars between
the kings of the Franks, were the cause of much calamity and
distress to the poor believers throughout France, so that they
might well be compared to the cruel persecutions which in
former times occurred under the heathen princes."</p>

<p>Concerning this, Remigius, bishop of Auxerre, who lived
about this time, writes thus (on Ps. <i>69)</i>, "There are different times of persecution; one, when the
heathen fall unmercifully upon the Christians; the other, when
the evil purpose of the (false) Christians persecutes the
believers, which time still continues in the church; for,
though the heathen kings, and others, are dead, still the devil
is not dead, who secretly vents his cruelty, by secret
instruments, that is, through bad Christians. <i>Chron., 9th
book, page 287, col 1,</i> from <i>Leonhard, lib. 4, histor.
Georg., lib. 4, fol. 305.</i></p>

<h2>GRIEVOUS AND LAMENTABLE PERSECUTION OF THE CHRISTIANS, BY THE SARACENS, AT CORDOVA IN SPAIN, ABOUT A. D. <i>850</i></h2> 

<p>About A. D. <i>850,</i> the Saracens, who were adherents to
the Mohammedan religion, invaded various islands of the
Mediterranean Sea, and also the kingdom of Spain, in which they
penetrated so far that their king had his court in the city of
Cordova.</p>

<p>In the meantime, in order to treat the inhabitants of said
country kindly as it were, and thus draw them gradually over to
the Mohammedan religion, the Christians were allowed to remain,
on condition that they would not gainsay, revile, or refute
their false prophet Mohammed and his laws; also that they
should no longer go into their churches, but pay their taxes,
and live quietly under their jurisdiction.</p>

<p>The Christians, thus limited, and obeying their conscience
by calling evil, evil, and good, good, were easily apprehended
by the Saracens, and accused of capital crime; but, what is
most to be deplored, these accusations proceeded sometimes from
apostate, so-called Christians, yea, from such as bore the name
of bishops (apparently political bishops, or such as were
designated ordinaries by the Roman church), who, loving the
favor of the Saracens more than the favor of God, declared that
those who were put to death by them, because they obeyed their
conscience, were no martyrs and could not be recognized as
such; and what is yet more, they maintained this in a public
council.</p>

<p>The persecutors, as can easily be judged, greatly encouraged
by this, lamentably persecuted, martyred, and put to death many
innocent Christians. Oh, deadly piercings of antichrist,
through the instrumentality of his bishops!</p>

<p>It is true, no severe tortures were inflicted upon the
Christians who were martyred in this persecution, but for the
most part they were simply beheaded; however, after their death
their bodies were shamefully treated; first they were suspended
for a time on gallows, then burned, and their ashes strewed in
the rivers; or they were left unburied, to be torn to pieces by
dogs and birds.</p>

<p>It is stated that this persecution commenced long before A.
D. 850, but that at this time it was at the height of its fury,
for which reason, it seems, the ancient writers have ascribed
it to this year. Compare <i>Memor. Sanctor, lib. 1. Apal. Mart.
and Doc. Mart. Eulog., lib. 2, cap. 8, 9,</i> and <i>vita
E-ulogii,</i> with <i>A. Mell., 2d book, fol. 306, col. 2, 3;
also, Chron. van den Ondergang, 9th book, page 290,</i> from
<i>Hist. Wenc., fol. 443. Chron. Nicoll. Gill., fol.</i></p>

</div><div id="244"> <br />
 

<p><i>172, Leonh., lib. 4.</i> However, this persecution is
here fixed one year later, namely A. D. 851.</p>

<p>What has been said of this persecution, is to be further
explained by the remarks made in the first note. In the
meantime, we will investigate what martyrs mentioned by name,
suffered during said persecution for the testimony of Jesus
Christ, and the confession of the holy Gospel.</p>

<h2>JOHN, A TRADESMAN AT CORDOVA, SEVERELY SCOURGED FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, SET REVERSELY UPON AN ASS, MOCKED, AND MISERABLY TORMENTED, A. D. 850</h2> 

<p>A. D. 850, in the city of Cordova, John, an unlearned, but
pious man, who kept a few things for sale, was accused to the
judge, by false witnesses, for the sake of Jesus Christ, of
deriding and reviling Mohammed. But as the witnesses in this
case were not found reliable enough in their accusations, to
condemn him to death, this faithful servant of God was
sentenced to be severely scourged, and constrained to deny
Christ. But this pious profes sor of Christ cried aloud: That
he would not forsake the Christian religion unto death, and
declared that he was innocent of the false accusations which
had been brought against him.</p>

<p>This firmness so enraged the judge against John, that he had
him scourged with more than five hundred stripes, causing the
executioners to continue beating him, till he, under their
hands, fell to the ground apparently dead. But as he still
lived and breathed after this torture, they set him backwards
on an ass, and led him through the whole city, from street to
street, with a crier, who cried, "Thus shall it be done with the
revilers of our prophet, and with the ridiculers of our
worship."</p>

<p>This done they fettered him with heavy chains, and put hirri
in prison; but as to how he finally died, we have not been able
to discover in the accounts of the ancients; this much,
however, is certain, that he contended for the name of Christ
even unto blood. Compare Eulog. <i>Memorial. Sanctor., lib.
1,</i> with the account of <i>Abr. Mellinus, Zd book, fol.
307,</i> Col. 1; 2.</p>

<p>NOTE.-From a want of fuller records by the ancient writers,
we have not been able to obtain further information regarding
the cause of the mar-</p>

<p><i>Page244</i></p>

<p>tyrdom of the above-mentioned John, than that being zealous
of the truth of God and his Saviour, he suffered principally
for the second article of our general Christian faith, in which
we confess that we believe in Jesus Christ, the only begotten
Son of God; which justly, and according to the rule of God's
Word, can be called a good profession, I Tim. 6:12.</p>

<p>Moreover, we have found nothing derogatory to his faith, of
papal superstition or the like, in other points;
notwithstanding in the city of Cordova, where he suffered,
there were also people, who, it appears, were not free from the
Roman pollutions; of which history has made mention. Hence,
since nothing of this kind can be laid to his charge, we are
bound, according to the nature of love, to judge the best both
of his person and the other points of his faith, and this not
only with regard to him, but also to others, who suffered for
the same reason, and of whom the ancients, in regard to this
matter, have given like testimony.</p>

<h2>NUNILO AND ALOIDA, SISTERS AND CHRISTIAN MAIDENS PUT TO DEATH WITH THE SWORD IN THE CITY OF OSCA, FOR THE NAME OF THE LORD JESUS, ABOUT A. D. 851</h2> 

<p>For this contest for the name of Christ, the Lord prepared
not only men, but also women, and young maidens so that in the
following year, 851, as near as can be reckoned, two sisters,
one named Nunilo, the other Aloida, did not hesitate to confess
Jesus Christ, their heavenly Bridegroom, among the Mohammedans,
not only with their blood, but also with their death; which
took place on this wise</p>

<p>Their father was a Mohammedan, and their mother a nominal
Christian, but not very pious, since she, according to the
testimony of the ancients, after the death of her husband,
married a Saracen (Mohammedan) or unbeliever. In consequence of
this, these pious young women could not freely observe, and
live up to, the confession of their faith, according to the
doctrine of Christ, on account of the constraints placed upon
them by their unbelieving stepfather. Compelled, therefore, to
leave their mother's house, they went to live with their aunt
or mother's sister, who, being a true Christian woman, brought
them up farther in the Christian religion.</p>

<p>The envious enemy of the human race, filled with jealousy
because they, the children of a Saracen father, had become
Christians, accused them through the instrumentality of wicked
persons, to the chief officer of the city of Osca, so that
shortly after they were brought before the judge. The latter,
in order to draw them away from the Christian religion made
them great promises of gifts and presents. He moreover offered
to secure their marriage with the most excellent young men,
etc., if they would but embrace Mohammedanism. But, if they
remained stubborn, and despised the advice of the president or
judge, he threatened to torture them with divers torments, and
finally to put them to death with the sword.</p>

<p>Thereupon, these pious maidens being strengthened by the
Spirit of God, firmly and fearlessly answered the judge,
saying, "O judge! how is it, that thou dost command us to turn
away from true godliness? since God has made known to us, that
no one in the world is richer than Jesus Christ, our Saviour;
and that nothing is more blessed than the Christian faith, by
which the just live, and the saints have conquered kingdoms.
For, without Christ there is no life, and without His knowledge
there is nothing but eternal death. To dwell with Him, and to
live in Him, is our only and true consolation; but to depart
from Him, is eternal perdition. From His communion we will
never be separated as long as we live in this life; for, having
given and entrusted our innocence (or youth) into His keeping,
we hope eventually to become His bride., "For, the profit of the transient riches of this world, with
which thou didst think to allure us, we count as dung and loss,
that we may gain Christ, because we know that everything under
the sun, except Christ and true .faith in Him, is vanity., "Nor are we moved by the threatened punishment; since we
know, that the torments endure but a short time; yea, for death
itself, which thou hast presented to us as the final terror, we
long the more because we know that thereby we go without delay*
to heaven, to Christ our Bridegroom, there to be embraced by
Him inseparably, through His love."</p>

<p>The judge, perceiving the steadfastness of their faith, and
the power of their confession, deemed it well to commit these
young maidens, each separately to certain Saracen women, to be
instructed in the Mohammedan religion, strictly prohibiting
them from conversing with each other, or with any others of the
Christians. The women, who had undertaken to instruct them in
the Saracen or Mohammedan religion, daily presented to them
their idolatry and pernicious doctrine, seeking thus to poison
them with the cup of the wrath of God, from the hand of
Mohammed. But all in vain; they remained steadfast, which was
called stubbornness by their enemies.</p>

<p>Finally they were brought before the tribunal and made a
public spectacle; where they, confessing Christ as before, and
declaring Mohammed an enemy of the Christian faith, as well as
rejecting his doctrine, were executed with the sword, in the
city of Osca in Spain, on the 22d of October, A. D. 851. Though
others differ considerably in their chronology of this matter,
we leave it to the decision of the intelligent reader. Compare
the account of A. <i>Mellinus, second book, fol. 308, col.
1,</i></p>

<br /><cite>*"To go without delay to heaven, to Christ," may
fitly be understood as having reference to the commending of
their souls into the hands of Christ; as is stated of the holy
martyr Stephen, namely, that he saw the heavens opened, and
Christ standing on the right hand of God; to whom, in his
extremity, he commended his soul, saying: 'Lord Jesus, receive
my spirit. And when he had said this, he fell asleep" (Acts
7:59,60)</cite> 

</div><div id="246"> 

<p>2, with the authors from whom the same has been extracted.
<i>Eulog. Memor. Sanctor., lib.</i> 2, <i>cap. 7,</i> and
<i>Interp.</i></p>

<p>Touching these two pious martyresses; there is also to be
observed what is said in the added note respecting John, the
first-mentioned martyr.</p>

<p>NOTE.-A. D. 852, the zeal of some to die for the name of
Jesus Christ was so great that multitudes of them confessed
Christ, and, hastening to martyrdom, suffered themselves to be
put to death as defenseless lambs, for Christ's sake. It is
stated that among these there were two young heroes of Jesus
Christ, namely Emilas and Hieremias, who, from a well-meaning
and special zeal, spoke against -Mohammed, and thus offered
themselves, to suffer for Christ their Saviour. For this they
were both executed with the sword, whereupon (according to the
testimony of the ancients), though the weather had been fine in
the forenoon, immediately at the hour of their death, there
followed mighty peals of thunder, so that the earth quaked;
terrible lightnings fell from the air; great darkness, heavy
hailstorms, furious whirlwinds, .and storms manifested
themselves, as though the insensible elements (according to
Rulogius) were mourning the death of these pious martyrs; whose
dead bodies were taken across the river and suspended on
stakes, on the 15th of September, A. D. 852. A. <i>Mell., fal.
309,</i> col. 4, from <i>Memor. Sanctor., lib. 2, cap.</i> 2.
For certain reasons, however, we will not comment on these
persons, though we know of nothing to censure, as regards
either their faith or their life.</p>

<h2>AUREA, A GOD-FEARING MAIDEN, AFTER MANY SEVERE TRIALS, EXECUTED WITH THE SWORD, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, AT CORDOVA, A. D. 856</h2> 

<p>Aurea was by descent a noble maiden, and a sister to the
martyr John, of whom we have already spoken, from the province
Hispalis or Seville, who was betrayed and accused by some of
her countrymen. The judge, who was a relative of hers,
endeavored by every possible means to draw her away from
Christ, in which he also succeeded. But shortly after, she
repented of her apostasy, and went daily into the congregation
of the believers, that by the hearing of the Word of God she
might be strengthened in the Spirit against a like conflict in
time to come.</p>

<p>The enemy of mankind, who could not endure it, that Aurea
now adhered more firmly to God her Creator, than before,
instigated another to accuse this maiden to the judge, who
instantly had her brought by his bailiffs, and threatened her
as before. But in the second conflict she was as much stronger
to obtain the martyr's crown, as, in her former apostasy, she
had been too weak to resist the temptation; for she thus
answered the judge, saying, "I have never separated myself from
Christ my God; I have never forsaken the religion of true
godliness; I have never for one moment adhered to your impious
worship; though I once, with my tongue, seemed to have
apostatized from Christ, my heart was nevertheless far from it,
and I had a firm confidence in my Lord Jesus Christ, who has
again lifted up my contrite conscience, by His consoling
promises, saying? 'He that believeth in me, though he were
dead, yet shall he live.' Though, with my words, I fell into
the snare of denial, yet my heart was strengthened through the
power of faith, for, as soon as I went away from you, I kept
with heart and mind the faith which I had practiced from
infancy. Hence, there is nothing left, but to execute me with
the sword, or else you must give me liberty to freely serve my
Lord Christ."</p>

<p>Thereupon the judge said that she should be kept in prison
until he had informed the king of the matter. The result was,
that the following day, according to the king's command, she
was put to death with the sword, and then, with a murderer,
suspended by her heels on the gallows. Her dead body was sunk
with several thieves and murderers in the river Betis. She died
on the 19th of July, A. D. 856, at Cordova, under Mahumad, king
of the Saracens. In this account, A. M., fol. <i>311,</i> must
be reconciled with <i>Eul., lib. 3, cap. 17.</i></p>

<p>REMARK.-For further information we would remark that the
afore-mentioned martyress, as regards profession in the matter
of external religion, is to be distinguished from four other
persons, Helias, Paulus, Isidore, and Argimirus, together with
others, whom the last-mentioned authors, in their account, have
noticed just before the martyrdom of Aurea; for they, to all
appearance, were of the Roman profession, of which we find no
evidence in Aurea. She professed a good profession of Christ
her Saviour, and died thereupon; on which account she is justly
classed among the true believing martyrs, according to what we
stated in the note respecting the martyr John, for the year
850.</p>

<p>NOTE.-Since we do not find sufficient lizht on the
persecutions, with regard to the names, as well as the
confessions of the martyrs. we will now prepare ourselves to
take leave of them, and commit those whom we have not noticed,
as being too dark before our eves, to the omniscient God, who
will bring all to light. Our purpose is, to turn to Italy and
England, where more and brizhter light has arisen, though it
had its bezinninp in France; so that the papal darkness,
particularly in the matter of transubstantiation and the mass,
was illuminated by it. Yet, this shall end as a traeedv, for we
shall show that the bright light of truth had to set in rays of
blood and to sink under the earth as it were, to the sorrow of
the true believing Christians.</p>

<p>NoTE.-In our account of holy baptism. for the year 860, we
made mention of Hincmar, bishon of Laudun, and stated that he
desired that infants should be left unbaptized, on account of
which he was greatly censured. But it seems that this was</p>

</div><div id="247"> 

<p>not the last of it, seeing other writers afterwards relate
that he was sentenced and condemned in a certain council in the
palace of Dusiacum, in the province of Rheims; moreover, that
he was sent into banishment, laid in chains, and, two year
after, deprived of both his eyes. However, these writers do not
unanimously state that this happened to him solely on account
of his rejecting infant baptism, but relate also, that it was
done through the bitter hatred of the archbishop of Rheims, as
well as from other reasons relating to popery. As to the time
of this event, the papist Caesar Baronius fixes it, A. D. 871,
though we, from comparison with other authors, should fix it
five years earlier. Moreover, though we, as regards the life,
and walk of said Hincmar, have found nothing but what is good,
we dare not give him a place among the martyrs, because of the
differing statements of the ancient writers; hence we commit
him to God, who will judge his cause.</p>

<h2>JOHANNES ERIGENA, A SCOTCHMAN, PUT TO DEATH BY HIS SCHOLARS FOR THE CONFESSION OF THE EVANGELICAL TRUTH, , THROUGH THE INSTIGATION OF SOME MONKS, AT MELDUM IN ENGLAND, ABOUT A. D. 884</h2> 

<p>Johannes Erigena, a Scotchman, and, hence, called Scotus,
flourished, in the matter of his doctrine, in the time of the
Emperor Louis the Pious, and his son Lothaire, somewhere in one
of the cities of France. He was exceedingly virtuous, learned,
and eloquent, and, consequently, for his eminent gifts, highly
celebrated and esteemed. For, when Charles, one of the sons of
the above Emperor, was desirous of having a good translation
and, exposition of the books of Dionysius, the Areopagite,
especially of the treatise <i>Hierarchia,*</i> John executed
the same very laudably, and with marked ability, so that one
Anasasius, who was librarian at the time, and composed a
preface to it, writes of him thus, "It is astonishing how this
barbariarl, (that is, foreigner or Scotchman), who hails from
the uttermost parts of the world, was able to comprehend with
his understanding such high things, and to translate them (said
book of Dionysius), into another language, namely, from the
Greek into the Latin; I refer to Johannes the Scotchman,
concerning whom I have heard that he is a very holy and godly
man."</p>

<p>This is the testimony even of one of his adversaries,
touching his learning and godliness; so that it is not
necessary for us to adduce additional testimony relative to
this point, from other authors, hence we let it suffice.</p>

<p>Afterwards, it seems he wrote a book on the Eucharist (that
is, on the thankoffering of the Supper), in which he very
profoundly and conclusively refuted the gross error of the
papists in the matter</p>

<p>' This was a treatise on the name of God, and thr heavenly
order of the angels. of transubstantiation, or the essential
change of the bread into the body of Jesus Christ; also, the
mass and the sacrifice which thereby, in popery, is offered for
both the living and the dead. This was the cause of his death,
as the sequel shows.</p>

<p>When he had written this book, it was greatly esteemed by
some, among whom, subsequently, was Berengarius, deacon of the
church at Angiers, of whom it is stated that he took and
learned his belief respecting this point (and perhaps also
against infant baptism, since he strenuously dissuaded from
it), from .the writings of Johannes Scotus; of which we propose
to speak more fully in the proper place. On the other hand,
said book was exceedingly hated by those who were zealous
defenders of the Roman superstitions, especially of
transubstantiation and the mass; so much so, that when it had
come before Pope Leo IX, the result was, that both (as appears)
he and his book were condemned and anathematized as heretical;
which was done chiefly in the council of Vercellis.</p>

<p>When this had thus happened, and he had incurred the hatred
of the pope and many of the papists, he left the city of
Paris-where he was rector of the University-and also, -France,
and went to England, where he took up his residence at Meldum,
supporting himself by teaching and instructing inexperienced
youths. But after a few years, when the spite and hatred of
some monks could tolerate him no longer, on account of his
faith against the Roman church, they instigated his scholars
against him, so that they stabbed him to death with awls and
penknives.</p>

<p>Other writers are of the opinion that the monks did it
themselves. Both may be true; the monks, having instigated the
young men, and probably finding them too timid, may have led
off in the murder, the youths following, with penknives, awls,
etc., so that said martyr lost his life under their hands. This
much is certain, that he died a cruel death for his faith, and
that the monks, through the instumentality of his scholars,
were in no small measure the cause of it, as the records of his
death inform us. Compare the account of <i>A. Mellinus, 2d
book, fol. 343, col. 2, 3,</i> and <i>fol. 392, col. 4,</i> and
<i>fol. 393, eol. 1, 2,</i> taken from <i>Trithem. de Script.
Eccles., Item. Hist. Reg. Angl., in Alfredo, lib. 2. Hobed.
Annal. parte Priore. Westmon., in Flor. Hist., A. D. 883. Idem,
Hist. parte Prima. Chron. Car., lib. 4, sub. Henr. 4, Seniore.
Lanfranc., lib. de Euch., contra Bereng. Baron. Annal. T. 11,
A. D. 1059. Mamelsburi Regum Angl., lib. 2.Testibus. Lanfranco,
Guytmando and Aliis.</i></p>

<h2>CONCERNING THE TIME OF THIS HISTORY</h2> 

<p>NOTE.-P. J. Twisck gives two different accounts concerning
it; in the first he fixes the date, <i>A. D. 869. Chron. 9th
book, page 306, col. 2,</i> from <i>Hist. Andr., fol.</i> 160.
In the second he fixes it, <i>A. D. 8884. Page 311, col. 2,</i>
from <i>John Munster, fol. 83.</i> In the first place he calles
him Johannes</p>

</div><div id="248"> 

<p>Scotus, in the second, Johannes Erigena; however, as the
account itself declares, it is the same person:</p>

<p>As to the dates 869 and 884, to which the history of said
Johannes has been referred by him, some one might think that
this could not very well be reconciled, which may, however, be
easily done, if we take the year 869 as the time in which said
martyr flourished and propagated his doctrine, and the year 884
as the time when he died and was martyred for the principles
which he taught.</p>

<h2>FURTHER OBSERVATION TOUCHING THE HISTORY ITSELF, ACCORDING TO THE ACCOUNT OF CARION, P. MELANCTHON AND C. PEUCER</h2>  
<p>"In the time of Emperor Louis the Pious," said authors
say,"Johannes Scotus read. and explained publicly in the
schools, Dionysius' treatise <i>Hierarchia.</i> This Johannes
Scotus, when he censured and refuted with good.reasons, the
false and impious tenet of the sacrifice of the mass,
concerning which others at that time taught that in the Supper
Christ was to be offered up for the living and the dead, was
stabbed to death by his disciples and hearers, with their
penknives." <i>Chron. Carion., from the beginning of the world
until Chirles L'., enlarged by Phil. Melancthon and Casp.
Peucer, printed</i> 1586, <i>4th book, fol. 476, col.
1.</i></p>

<h2>CONCERNING SAID HISTORY,  ACCORDING TO THE ACCOUNT OF SEBASTIAN FRANCK OF WORTH</h2> 
<p>"Johannes, ,surnamed Scotus, not of the.Gray Friars, wrote a
treatise on the sacrament, denying the presence of- the body
,and blood of Christ. He was condemned in the council of
Vercellis. He was rector at Paris; 'eminently versed in the
languages, and the phenix of his age: The Emperor Lothaire held
him in great esteem. Of him there have writ ten, Platiria,"
etc. See <i>Chron. Rom. Kett., fol. 106, eol. 4, letter
J.</i></p>

<h2>P. J. TWISCK'S ACCOUNT OF SAID JOHANNES SCOTUS</h2>  <p>"Johannes Scotus," he writes,"lived under the Emperor Louis
the Pious, and wrote strenuously against transubstantiation. On
a certain occasion, when he, in an exposition, was severely
censuring the delusion of the blasphemous oblation or offering
up of the Lord Christ in the Supper for the living and the
dead, his disciples and hearers killed him with iron styles."
<i>Chron., 9th book, fol.</i> 306, <i>col. 2,</i> from <i>Hist.
Andr., fol. 160.</i></p>

<h2>FURTHER EXPLANATION TOUCHING SAID J. SCOTUS, ACCORDING TO THE ACCOUNT OF THE PAPIST BARONIUS, AS NOTED BY ABR. MELLINUS</h2> 
<p>"But let us add," says he,"the opinion of , Baronius,
touching this Scotchman: As regards johannes Scotus, we have
said above,.in the' proper place, that he was in bad repute
with the Pope Nicholas I. Although he wrote so violently
against the Catholic faith, yet, as he did not spread it among
the people, so that his views became known to all, many had a
good opinion of him, so much so, that they, though most
inconsiderately (thus he speaks, from a papistic standpoint)
gave him the title of martyr." Compare <i>A: Mell., 2d
book,</i> fol. 393, col. 1, 2, with Ccesar. <i>Baronius'</i>
account touching <i>J. Scotus, Annal. T. 11, A. D.</i>
1059.</p>

<p>From this account it appears that the papist Baronius, who
was a cardinal of the Roman see, was not pleased that many had
a good opinion of Johannes -Scotus, and, what is still more,
gave him the title of martyr; but this is not to be wondered
at, since the true papists have a good opinion of none but
those who adhere to the Roman superstitions, and never dare to
utter a word of censure against them; and they would confer the
title of martyr upon none but those who have sufered for the
Roman see and its traditions (which are a parcel of human
inventions). However, we will let them answer for this, and
leave it.</p>

<p>We return to Johannes Scotus and say that, as regards his
boldness, he showed himself as behooves a true martyr, since,
to clear his conscience and defend the oppressed truth, he did
not hesitate to incur the hatred of the pope and the papists,
yea, the prospect of being anathematized, excommunicated, and,
finally, miserably tortured and put .to death for it. He died
for the confession of the Christian and evangelical truth,
particularly for the article by which we commemorate the Lord's
death, and in which lies the consolation of the soul, with
regard to our blessed redemption.</p>

<p>But, since Berengarius, who opposed not only
transubstantiation and the mass, but also infant baptism; was
afterwards charged with having imbibed and obtained his belief
from Johannes Scotus, the afore-mentioned martyr, we may
conclude that said martyr must have opposed infant baptism;
otherwise it could not be said in general words, that
Berengarius imbibed or obtained his views from J. .Scotus,
which is nevertheless frequently and confidently asserted by
ancient writers. With this we will take our leave of J. Scotus
and also of our account of the martyrs of this century; as
being sufficient for the well-disposedfor the evil-disposed we
care not; hence, our soul shall rest, and content itself with
the pious.</p><br />

<br />

<h1>AN ACCOUNT OF THE HOLY BAPTISM IN THE TENTH CENTURY: SUMMARY OF BAPTISM IN THE TENTH CENTURY</h1>

<p>[The corruption of this century, caused by the papal
superstitions, is sadly lamented by Jacob Mehrning and P. J.
Twisck.</p>

<p>Nevertheless, it is shown thereupon, that in the midst of
papal darkness there were still some who, in the matter of holy
baptism, did not differ from the institution of Christ and His
apostles.</p>

</div><div id="249"> 

<p>Giselbert teaches, that baptism must be connected with
regeneration and a good will.</p>

<p>Then follows Ansbert, who declares that Christ, through
preaching and baptism, is still daily bringing unto Himself
heirs; that we must be baptized upon the confession of the holy
Trinity; and that after baptism we may sin no more.</p>

<p>Smaragdus follows next and says that it is impossible for
the body to receive the mystery of baptism aright, if the soul
has not previously accepted the truth of the faith; that the
excellent <i>ordinance o f the baptism of Christ</i> commands
the apostles first to teach all nations, and then to
incorporate them by the baptism of faith.</p>

<p>Then appears Theophilact, who produces very excellent
testimonies concerning baptism; as, among others, that the
baptized have put on Christ, Gal. 3:27; that the candidates are
like the prodigal son when he was converted; that he is not
baptized aright, who has not believed;, that in baptism all
believers are enlightened by the Holy Ghost; that no one may be
recognized as a believer, who is unregenerated or lives after
the flesh; that the truly baptized may not drive away the Holy
Spirit by wicked works, but must preserve the image of God
unspotted; that the good profession of which we read, I Tim.
6:12, must take place at the instruction of those that are to
be baptized; that those baptized by John, were delivered by
repentance from the bonds of the soul; that the novices
repented before baptism; that the Supper was administered to
the baptized, etc.</p>

<p>Thereupon it is stated, from D. Vicecomes, that the papists,
when infant baptism was introduced among them, abolished the
practice of administering the Supper to the baptized. It is
furthermore demonstrated, that the Romanists ought to have
abolished infant baptism just as well as the infant Supper.</p>

<p>The baptism of Olympius, his wife Exuperia, and his son
Theodulus, is adduced, from Simon Metaphrastes; also, of the
baptism of Theridates, and Nemesius.</p>

<p>Fulbertus Carnotenses is the last witness respecting holy
baptism.]</p>

<p>We now pass over to the tenth century after the birth of
Christ, to find in it, as we have done in the preceding times,
the marks of the Christian believers, namely, the true baptism
with its observance according to the institution of Christ and
the practice of His apostles; which, as we shall show in the
proper place, obtained and was practiced also at this time,
though under great difficulties.</p>

<p>Yet, what shall we say of this century? Many well-disposed
persons, who loved the truth, abhorred and detested it, because
the innumerable human superstitions of the Roman church had
risen nigh unto heaven, and the pure commandments of Jesus
Christ, without the observance of which men cannot be saved,
had been cast almost down into the pit. This was the century
concerning which much woful lamentation was made, because papal
tyranny, in the matter of worship, had increased so
exceedingly. Of these things (after the title), the following
is contained in <i>Jacob Mehrning's History of Baptism.</i></p>

<h2>OF THE DEPLORABLE STATE OF THE WORSHIP OF GOD IN THE TENTH CENTURY</h2> 
<p>"In the tenth century the dominion of the Roman pope had
exceedingly obscured, and taken possession of, nearly all the
churches in Europe, so that everything had to be done according
to his pleasure, both in spiritual and secular governments;
hence, great darkness prevailed at this time, in which but very
few learned, virtuous, and celebrated men lived. For fear of
the great tyranny, one dared scarcely speak the least word of
the adulteration of the doctrine, or the abuses in the false
worship, and the increase of the abominable blasphemies; for,
as soon as those who knew better, and feared God, uttered the
least word of opposition, the pope instantly thundered, with
hail and lightning as it were, excommunications from the Roman
chair, so that every one was terrified, since also the secular
lords were bewitched and controlled by him. Was it to be
wondered at, then, that the corruptions with reference to
baptism, increased the longer the more?" <i>Bapt. Hist., p.</i>
556, from <i>Magd. Cent. 10, cap. 1.</i></p>

<p>Touching the abuses in and about baptism, which were then
introduced the decree of the pope and the councils, they are
noticed by different .writers, as may be seen in <i>Cent.
Magd., Cent., 10, cap. 6,</i> 10, 11.</p>

<p>In short, whereas formerly the catechumens had not been
baptized until, after proper instruction, they had given an
account of their faith, either on Easter or Whitsuntide, it was
now ordained, that, when death or peril of life was
apprehended, they should be baptized immediately. <i>Metaphr.,
lib.</i> 2, <i>cap. 5.</i></p>

<p>Whereas baptism had formerly been administered with
unblessed or unconsecrated water, it was now blessed and
consecrated, yea, the chrism was used, the sign of the cross on
the forehead, the oil of chrism. <i>Bacent;t. Hist., page 576,
num. 13.</i></p>

<p>But the most ridiculous of all was, that, whereas formerly
only human beings bad been baptized, Pope John XIV now
commanded that the great bell in the Lateran church should be
baptized and named after him. <i>Bapt. Hist., page 577, ex
Balaeo Centur. 2. P. J. Twisck, Chron., 10th book, for the year
965, pare 341, col. 1.</i></p>

<p>These exceeding great errors of the Roman church, and the
dreadful darkness in which all nations, with the exception of a
few pious people, sat during those dreary times, is described
in <i>P. J. Twisck's Chronijk,</i> in the conclusion of the
thousandth year, with the following words (after the title)</p>

</div><div id="250"> 

<h2>FURTHER OBSERVATIONS CONCERNING THE DEPLORABLE STATE OF THE WORSHIP OF GOD IN THIS CENTURY</h2> 
<p> "As far as regards the preceding century, I cannot speak of
any improvement, inasmuch as the secular affairs manifested
themselves with much commotion, strife, misery, and distress.
Papal dominion prevailed more and more. The idolatrous
ceremonies were very prolific; the baptismal water was
consecrated; the oil was prepared by the bishop alone, two days
before Easter, as well as imparted to others; the Supper, or
sacrament, was administered nearly every Sunday, at an altar or
table prepared for this purpose. Excommunication or the ban of
the church was used very frivolously, not only against common
people, but also against emperors, kings, and princes. The
punishment imposed upon penitents consisted much in abstaining
for seven years from certain food, meat and wine, or in the
giving of alms, building of churches, founding of cloisters,
and other like inventions and burdens, according to the ability
and mind of each respective individual., "It was taught, that the saints must be worshiped; not that
they should save the supplicants, but that they should
intercede, and ask God for help for them., "Holy people were presented, who had died before the time of
Christ, in the Old Testament, and who, as it was said, had been
in hell, yet without pain-a strange notion and wicked doctrine
respecting the holy fathers., "It was said that there was a purgatory, where men had to
atone after this life, and wash away sin by suffering., "The canonizing of ecclesiastical persons was very common.
The holidays instituted in honor of the saints, were very many,
and took away nearly one half of the year. The images and
graves of the saints were greatly esteemed. Kings, princes,
lords, ecclesiastics, and laymen, made pilgrimages to Rome, St.
Jago, Jerusalem, and other places, where the bodies or bones of
the saints were buried or preserved, as though dead bones
without spirit, could impart life or benefit., "The sick would confess to the ear of the priest, and
thereupon receive the sacrament of the unction; after which
they departed in full assurance, though without any good
resulting from it., "The dead were buried with the ringing of bells, with tapers
and torches, with much singing, with masses, vigils, and
prayers for their souls, etc." <i>P. J. Twisck, Chron., 10th
book, page 361.</i></p>

<p>Thus, the tenth century was utterly corrupted through the
superstitions of popery; but, as in the dark midnight the stars
still sometimes give their light, so it was also here; for,
that the marks of the true church might not be swallowed up
entirely in the darkness, some, though but few, manifested
themselves, who, in one and the other point, but principally in
the matter of baptism, showed, that hey, as regards the matter
itself, did not differ from the institution of Christ and the
practice of His holy apostles; which can be gathered from the
writings they have left.</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 910.-Or very close to the beginning of
this century, the ancient writers place Giselbert, a man of
learning, but accused of strange opinions by his adversaries;
whom the emergency of the time compelled to stoop .and hide,
under the ravages of popery. He, though others have regarded
him as a member of the Roman church, opposed, apparently as
much as lay in his power, the pope and the Roman church, .and
this not a little in the matter of baptism. For, while the pope
and the Roman church generally taught that it was necessary,
yea, upon pain of damnation, to baptize the infants,
notwithstanding they have not, and cannot have, either true
regeneration or a good will [intention], which are nevertheless
required of candidates (Matt. <i>3:7, 8),</i> he taught that it
is indeed necessary to salvation, to be baptized, but that said
baptism must be connected with regeneration, and a good
intention; which things, besides the grace of Christ, he
considered the chief means to salvation, so much so, that any
one who had these virtues, though he were not baptized (that
is, if there had been no opportunity), could nevertheless be
saved because of the grace and power of God. Of this, there is,
among others, the following annotation in <i>Jacob Mehrning's
History of Baptism, page 567.</i></p>

<p><i>Of the necessity of baptism.-</i> Giselbert
<i>(Alter.</i> 1) , says, "It is true, God can save; yet, man
cannot be saved without baptism; (that is, that baptism which
is accompanied with regeneration, as the following words
declare), for thus says the author of this sacrament himself:
'Except a man be born of water and of the Spirit, he cannot see
the kingdom of God.' It is, however, not in the power of man,
to reject this way, and to choose to salvation another.
However, it is in God's power, if man cannot obtain this means
(baptism), to accept graciously His good <i>will." Cent. Magd.
X.,</i> cap. 4.</p>

<p>Hence, when he here speaks of the good will of man, it is
quite evident, that he treats neither of infants nor of infant
baptism, seeing infants have no knowledge of either a good or a
bad will, nor of baptism, nor of regeneration, to which said
passage of Giselbert also has reference; much less have they
the ability to worthily begin and execute all this, for the
proper reception of baptism. He intends simply to say, that
baptism is indeed necessary, yet not without regeneration;
which regeneration he regards as the most important of all,
according to John 3:5, 7, from which he concludes that it is
not in the power of man to reject this way, namely, to separate
regeneration from baptism, or baptism from regeneration, which
is a stricture upon those who were wont to reject the baptism
of the regenerated or penitent, and to go another way, as did
the Pharisees in the days</p>

</div><div id="251"> 

<p>of John the Baptist; who, rejecting the counsel of God
against themselves (namely, the:baptism of John), were not
baptized of him. Luke 7:30.</p>

<p>But, in order that no one need sorrow, who, having attained
to regeneration, could not receive baptism, on account of
serious obstacles or the want of a fitting opportunity, and,
hence, might imagine that there was no grace or mercy of God
for him, he adds this consolation, namely: ."That it is in
God's power, if man cannot obtain the means (baptism), to
accept graciously His good will."</p>

<p>Whatever others, especially papistic writers, may have
recorded of Giselbert's belief, detrimental to, or, at least,
against the point in view, we let them be responsible for it;
this is certain, that we have not as yet been able to find
anything to the contrary, in any authentic writer.:</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 925.-Shortly after, or very near the time
of Giselbert, Ansbert is mentioned, who, writing on several
matters of faith, or articles of religion, also makes mention
of baptism, approaching herein very closely the language, or,
at, least, the sense of the holy apostles, which appears from
the following testimonies</p>

<p><i>Bapt. Hist., rage</i> 568. Ansbert (on Rev. 19), says,
according to the words of Christ, John 1:13, "Which were born not of blood . . . but of God." <i>"Of
God,</i> that is, through the preached Word and the washing of
regeneration, by which mysteries (namely, preaching and the
washing of regeneration, that is, baptism) Christ still daily
begets and brings forth unto Himself heirs.</p>

<p>He here connects the Word of God, or preaching, with the
washing of regeneration, or baptism, and says that by them
Christ begets and brings forth unto Himself heirs.. How could
anybody more plainly declare: 1. what true baptism is; 2, what
belongs to it; and 3. what fruit proceeds from it. For,
firstly, what true baptism is, he expresses by these words:
<i>Washing of regeneration,</i> according, to Tit. 3:5,
indicating thereby, that true baptism is peculiar only to the
regenerate; that is, to the penitent. Secondly, what belongs to
baptism he expresses by these words: <i>The preached word;</i>
for, as the apostle declares,"Faith cometh by hearing, and
hearing by the word of God" (Rom. 10:17). The preached word is
therefore the means by which to attain to the faith, and faith
is the foundation upon which truly to receive baptism. As
necessary, then, as faith is, in order to be truly baptized,
upon it, so necessary also is the preached word, in order to
truly believe; consequently, Ansbert has justly joined the
preached word to baptism, as a proof that it belongs to it,
according to the words of Christ (Mark 16:15, 16), "Preach the
Gospel . . . he that believeth and is baptized." Thirdly, what
fruit proceeds from such baptism, when it is accompanied with
regeneration and the preached Word of God, he expresses with
these words: <i>"By which mysteries Christ still daily be gets
and brings forth unto Himself heirs,"</i> which well agrees
with the words of Paul, Gal. 3:26, 27"Ye are all the children
of God by faith in Christ Jesus.. For as many of you as have
been baptized into Christ have put on Christ." These, then; who
by this means become children of God, also become His heirs and
joint heirs with Christ. Rom. 8:17. Hence, said words of
Ansbert are conformable to the Holy Scriptures, and speak of
the baptism of the regenerate, but in no wise of infant
baptism.</p>

<p><i>Page</i> 569. Ansbert (on Rev. 21) teaches, "The trinity
of the Godhead we dare not, and shall not pass by unnoticed,
especially when we are baptized upon the confession' of the
holy Trinity, and are saved in the faith of the unity of the
same."</p>

<p>Here he again connects baptism with confession and faith,
yea, he says that we are baptized upon confession, and saved in
faith. Certainly, there is not a letter in the above passage,
which savors of infant baptism, but every word denies, yea,
opposes it, inasmuch as here such a baptism only is spoken of,
as is received with faith and the confession of the same; but
that this can be done by infants, militates not only against
the holy Scriptures, but also against nature.</p>

<p><i>Page</i> 574.-Ansbert (on Rev. 1) says, "He that has been'
washed in baptism from dead works, and, after such washing,
again commits sins unto death, it avails him nothing that he
was washed; hence, the Lord, through Isaiah (chap. 1, verse
16), admonishes thus: 'Wash ye, make you clean.' He washes and
cleanses himself, who commits no new sins after baptism. But he
that conducts himself thus that after such washing, he again
pollutes the white robe with sin, let him still not despair of
remission, if he desires to be washed again; for there is yet
another baptism, with which publicans and harlots are always
baptized-and what other is it but the well-spring of tears? in
which Mary Magdalene, polluted with many a stain of vice, and
Peter, when he had thrice denied the Lord, washed
themselves."</p>

<p>This whole passage is a warning to those who, having
committed sins unto death, were baptized for the remission of
the same, that they should not rely upon this, otherwise they
might be deceived; hence, against such, there are spoken these
words, "He that, after such washing again commits sins unto death,
it avails him nothing that he was washed." Then follows an
admonition, not to fall into new sins after baptism; yet that
any who had fallen into them, should still not despair. But to
such there is pointed out another baptism, naively, the baptism
of tears, that is, weeping and sorrowing for committed sins.
Then it is told what persons were once baptized with this
baptism of tears, namely, publicans and harlots, Mary
Magdalene, and Peter, for denying Christ.</p>

<p>Judge now, whether the above-stated things can be done by
infants, or whether they are peculiar only to the adult and
intelligent, and we are fully confident, that, if you are
impartial, you will choose the latter, and reject the
former.</p>

</div><div id="252">
<i>228011</i><br />
 

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 938.-Very near the time of Ansbert, a
place is accorded, in this century, to Smaragdus, who, having,
it seems, at some time previous to his conversion, or, at
least, to his enlightenment, maintained infant baptism, now
gave such testimony concerning baptism as completely excludes
infant baptism, inasmuch as he, writing, of the nature, virtue,
practice, and benefit of baptism, very closely follows the
language of Christ and His holy apostles.*</p>

<p>This appears from his exposition of the institution of
Christ respecting baptism., "First," he writes"all nations were taught, and then they
were baptized with water; for it is impossible for the body to
receive the mystery of baptism aright, if the soul has not
previously accepted the truth of the faith; for they were
baptized in the name of the Father, the Son, and the Holy
Ghost." Again, "This excellent ordinance of baptism commands the
apostles; first to teach all nations, then to incorporate them
by the baptism of faith, and then, after faith and baptism, to
teach them what they were to observe." Smarag<i>dus, on Matt.
28.</i></p>

<p>N. B."Thus," says the writer who has recorded this,"the
light of truth must shine forth in the midst of darkness; for,
where did Christ institute another ordinance of baptism, for
infants?" B. H., <i>page</i> 570, num, 7.</p>

<p>Though this last passage is very acceptable and worthy of
being considered, and confirms in no small measure the point we
have in view we will nevertheless let the writer keep it to
himself, it being only a comment on the aforementioned
matter.</p>

<p>We will, therefore, return to the matter itself, namely, to
the words of Smaragdus, and we shall soon find that his aim
was, to connect faith with baptism, yea, to admit no other
baptism than that which is accompanied with the truth of the
faith. For, what else does he intend to say with these
words, "For it is impossible for the body to receive the mystery
of baptism aright, if the soul has not previously accepted the
truth of the faith?" May we not firmly conclude from this, that
this man knew nothing of infant baptism, or, at least, that he,
when he wrote this, utterly denied and rejected it? Certainly,
no one could oppose, or reject, infant baptism more flatly and
plainly; for if it is impossible, as he says, to receive
baptism aright without having previously accepted the truth of
the faith, etc., he establishes that it is impossible to
baptize infants aright, seeing they, because of their
disqualification in regard to power as well as knowledge,
cannot previously accept the truth of</p>

<br /><cite>* What Smaragdua has written on I Pet. 2,
saying, "Such holy, pure, and innocent childhood, the mother,
the church of Christ, gains through the gr ace of bapism" gave
cause to consider whether by the word"childhood" he meant
infants of the cradle, and by the words"grace of baptism,"
infant baptism; but it is also interpreted as having reference
to the believing children of God, according to Gal. 3:26, and
to the baptism of believers, according to Mark 16: 16. As to
the exposition, however, which he is stated to have made on
John 13, it is held that it took place before his enlightenment.</cite> 

<p>the faith. Unless some one would say that he held, that there is
a certain faith or germ of faith, as others call it, in infants
from their birth (as was afterwards advanced by the Lutherans),
upon which, some were wont to assert, they ought to'be
baptized. But this is easily refuted; for; besides this, that
in the time of Smaragdus, as far as can be seen, they knew
nothing of this hidden faith, or germ of faith, in infants,
much less baptized them upon it, he plainly indicates that he
is speaking of another faith, which he calls <i>the truth of
the faith,</i> that is, a true and genuine faith; which true
and genuine faith no one ever, to our knowledge, not even to
the present day, claimed for infants, in order to establish
infant baptism upon it.</p>

<p>Moreover,' Smaragdus required of the candidates for baptism,
not only the truth of the faith, but also regeneration, as
appears from his comments on John 3, where he says, "He that is
regenerated through water and the Spirit, is invisibly changed
into a new man, and from a carnal lean is made a spiritual man;
and he is therefore rightly called, not only spiritual, but
also spirit." <i>B. H.,</i> p. 573, <i>nuln. 11.</i></p>

<p>In this passage again there are several things mentioned,
which indicate nothing else than that he is speaking of the
baptism of adults. For, besides that the.words, John 3, were
not spoken to an infant but to Nicodemus, a master in Israel,
the circumstances adduced by Smaragdus in regard to it also
indicate, that it is to be understood of none but adult
persons. For, what else does he mean to say by the word
<i>regenerated,</i> than that- the baptized person who has
previously truly prepared himself for baptism, gives up. his
old, earthly birth, and becomes a new creature? Thus also, when
he says that the baptized person is changed into a new man;
for, how shall any one be changed into a new man, who was not
an old man before? And also, When he adds, that such an one,
from a carnal man is made spiritual; for, how is it possible,
from a carnal man to become spiritual, if one has not
previously been carnal or lived after the flesh? Therefore, to
become spiritual, does not simply 'mean, to receive the Spirit
of God, but to live after the Spirit, in the fear of God, and
in all the Christian virtues. Gal. 5:21-24.</p>

<p>This being.,so, we will leave the testimony of Smaragdus and
proceed to others of hi's contemporaries, who held the same
belief and left it to us in their writings.</p>

<p>A. D. 952.-It is stated that in the time of the. Emperor
Otho the Great there lived and wrote, in Greece, a very
virtuous and learned man called Theophilact, who, writing on
various matters of faith, also makes mention of baptism, not
differing herein, as far as we have been able to ascertain,
from the Anabaptists of the present day, but agreeing with them
very well on the subject of baptism upon faith.</p>

<p><i>Bdpt. Hist., page</i> 571, Theophilact on Luke 15,</p>

</div><div id="253"> 

<p>says, "As many of us as have been baptized have put on
Christ."</p>

<p>These are the words of Paul, Gal. 3:27, which the apostle
does not speak to infants, but to the believing saints of the
Galatian church, namely,"that they had indeed, become children
of God by faith, but had put on Christ by baptism."</p>

<p>Continuing he says, "Then he puts on our hand (namely, to us
who through baptism have put on Christ) the ring, the seal of
Christianity, which works in us." Again-"Everyone that is
baptized, is also made a child of God, yea, readopted as such;
he is also, when he is washed from sin, made a partaker of the
fatted calf, and becomes the joy of the Father and His
servants, the holy angels and men, even as one that. has arisen
from the dead, and who was lost, and i's found."</p>

<p>He here compares the candidates to the prodigal son who,
repenting of his evil life, arose to go to his father, to seek
grace, and was received by him with outstretched arms. Thus, he
would say, it is also in baptism: The sinner seeks grace,
confesses his sins, manifests sorrow for them, yea, prays' and
supplicates for forgiveness. God, the Lord, who is the true
Father of all men by reason of creation, meets him, embraces
him with the' arms of His grace, yea, pardons all his past
sins, and, in token thereof, commands one of His servants to
baptize him. This he compares to the putting on of the ring,
saying, "Then he puts on our hand the ring, the seal of
Christianity." What he further says concerning the killing of
the fatted calf; and the joy of the Father and His servants,
has regard to the joy that is in heaven over the repentance of
such a pentitent (and thereupon baptized) sinner, which is
greater than over ninety and nine just persons, which need no
repentance. Luke 15:7.</p>

<p>Hence, when Theophilact compares the candidate for baptism
to the prodigal son, in the manner shown above, it is evident
enough, yea, as clear as midday, that he is treating of no
other baptism than the baptism of adults, and this of such
adults as manifest sorrow for their past sins.</p>

<p>Page 572. Theophilact on John 8, says, "Since Christ came to
take away the sins of the world, we can obtain remission of
sins in no other way than, by means of baptism (however
properly speaking the blood of Christ is the effective cause of
the remission and taking away of sins), yet it is impossible
that he ,that has not believed; be baptized (aright); hence,
the unbeliever must afterwards die in his sins, for he has not
put off the old man, because he has not been baptized."</p>

<p>Though several things are said here, which confirm our
preceding explanation of the words of Theophilact, we shall
nevertheless notice only these words, "It is impossible that he
that has not believed, be baptized (aright);" for here
certainly every baptism which is not received with faith is
denied; hence, infant baptism cannot be admitted here, because
it is without all faith, yea, it is utterly denied here. And
thus, the words of The ophilact concerning baptism, are not
only clear, but also Christian-like and apostolical.</p>

<p>Page 572. Theophilact on II Cor. 3, says, "Even as silver,
exposed to the sun, does itself emit rays, because the sun
shines upon it; so also we, when we are purified in baptism,.
by the Holy Ghost, and illumined by His rays, emit a spiritual
radiance, perceived only in the soul, and are changed into the
same image, by the Spirit of the Lord, to our glory." And, a
little further on, "All believers are illumined in baptism by
the Holy Ghost, that their souls shine (or, emit radiance)
thereby." Again, "As we are all dead by one sinner, even so we
are all made alive, and are risen through Christ, in baptism;
and we justly recognize no one as believing, who lives after
the flesh, that is, who leads the old, carnal life; but all who
are regenerated by the Spirit, begin a new, spiritual
life."</p>

<p>The words which Theophilact speaks from or on II Cor. 3,
concerning-the candidates, Paul speaks of believers; and the
simile borrowed by the aforementioned writer from the silver,
which, when the sun shines upon it, reflects his rays, which he
applies to the candidates, who become illumined by the Holy
Ghost, and reflect a spiritual radiance of virtues, confirms,
in a good degree, that he is speaking of such candidates as can
be illumined by the Holy Ghost, and live virtuously, to the
honor of God, the edification of their neighbor, and to the
salvation of their own souls. What he says after that, fully
confirms our opinion, namely, that he is speaking of believing
candidates; for, this he clearly expresses with these
words, "All believers are illumined in baptism by the Holy
Ghost." What he adds finally, tends in the same direction, for
he says that,"As we are all dead by one sinner (Adam), even so
we are all made alive and are risen, through Christ, in
baptism." Who does not see that this making alive and rising
(in baptism) has respect to the renewing of the old life;
according to the teaching of Paul (Rom. 6:4), "Therefore we are
buried with him by baptism into death</p>

<p>that like as Christ was raised up from the dead by the glory
of the Father, even so we also should walk in newness of life."
That this is his meaning, be indicates by the following words,
when he calls those whom he has previously termed candidates,
believers and regenerated persons, saying, "We justly recognize no one as believing, who lives after
the flesh; but all who are regenerated (thus he calls the
candidates or the baptized) by the Spirit, begin a new,
spiritual life."</p>

<p>Page 573. Theophilact on II Tim. 1, says, "The Holy Ghost
hovers over us at baptism; now, if we keep this Spirit, and do
not drive Him away by wicked works, He keeps us and what we
have received from God; therefore, use all diligence, that you
keep the Holy Ghost, and He, who has been given you, will also
keep you."</p>

<p>It seems that in the days of Theophilact there was a failing
among some of the candidates, or. at least, among the
unbaptized Christians, that, in-</p>

</div><div id="254"> 

<p>stead of stirring up the grace of the Spirit of God, which
had been given them (after baptism), and thereby increasing and
proceeding in virtues, they decreased and retrograded, yea,
fell into wicked works. This, Theophilact opposed, warning them
to be careful not to drive the good Spirit of God away from
them by wicked works, seeing He will not dwell in a malicious
soul, nor in a body that is subject unto sin. Wisdom of Sol.
1:4.</p>

<p>Secondly, he admonishes them affectionately and consolingly,
to keep the gift of the Holy Ghost (after baptism), pointing
out also, the means by which this could be done, namely, by
avoiding wicked works, and using diligence, that is, such
diligence by which the worship of God and the common
edification could be promoted. The consolation which he, for
such, adds to his admonition, is expressed in these
words, "Therefore, use all diligence, that you keep the Holy
Ghost, and He . . . will also keep you." But what fruit his
warning, and consoling admonition had on those persons, is not
stated there; hence we will take our leave, and proceed to
other writings which he has left.</p>

<p><i>Same page as above.</i> Theophilaet on John 3, says, "It
is not enough for the preservation of purity, to be baptized;
but one must also use. great diligence, that the image of the
sonship of God, which is represented in baptism, is kept
unspotted. There are many who have received, in baptism, the
grace of adoption as children of God, but who, through
negligence, have not remained children of God unto the end.</p>

<p>Here he greatly laments the apostasy of the children of God,
namely, of those who, having been baptized, and having received
the grace of adoption as children of God, but through
negligence had apostatized so that they, as he calls it, had
not remained children of God. Certainly, this was a sad matter;
but notwithstanding we rejoice that in those times people were
baptized upon faith (as has been shown above), that they might
receive the grace of adoption as children of God; and that
there were yet persons (as appears from Theophilact) who taught
this doctrine and reproved the. opposing abuses; to which, has
been our sole aim.</p>

<p>Page 575. Theophilact (on I Tim. 6, where
the apostle says, "Thou hast professed a good profession before
many witnesses"), writes: -"This profession takes place at the
instruction of those who are to be baptized; and we profess by
it that we will forsake Satan, and pitch our tent with Christ,
that we may fully adhere to Him."</p> 

<p>How could any one speak more clearly and truly of baptism
according to _ the institution of Christ and the practice of
the apostles? He says here, that the good profession of which
Paul writes (I Tim. 6:12), took place at the instruction of
those who were to be baptized; by which he indicates that in
his time the candidates were not only instructed at and before
baptism, namely, in the Christian faith, but that they were
also required to make a profes sion of what they believed,
which consisted (as can be gleaned not only from Theophilact,
but also from other writers of that time) of two parts</p>

<p>firstly, in the confession of faith in God and in His Son
Jesus Christ; and secondly, in the renunciation of Satan, the
world, the flesh, and all its lusts.</p>

<p><i>Same page as above.</i> Theophilact on Mark 1, says, "All
who came to be baptized by John, were delivered through
repentance from the bond of their souls, if they believed on
Christ."</p>

<p>He says of those who came to John's baptism, that they were
delivered through repentance from the bond of their souls (that
is, from sin), if they believed on Christ; by which he
indicates that two things were required of those candidates, in
order that they might be delivered from sin; 1. <i>repentance;
2. faith in Christ.</i> Which things, since he adduces them for
the instruction of his contemporaries, were also required of
the candidates of his time, namely, that they had to repent and
believe on Christ. For, to what purpose should he otherwise, by
way of instruction, have adduced them?</p>

<p>Page 581. D. J. Vicecomes <i>(lib. 3,
cap. 3,</i> on Heb. 6), quotes from Theophilact, "When you were
to be baptized, you repented of dead works, that is, rejected
the works of Satan."</p>

<p>In <i>Lib. 5, cap. 37.</i> Vicecomes expresses the opinion,
that in the time of Theophilact the holy Supper was still
administered to the baptized, after baptism.</p>

<p>Whether we cast our eyes upon the words of Theophilact, or
upon those of Vicecomes, we see that both tend in the same
direction. As regards the words of Theophilact, he informs us
concerning the candidates of his time, that they, before
baptism, or, at least, when they were about to be baptized,
repented of dead works, which, as everyone knows, can only be
done by adults, and not at all by infants; for, one that is to
desist from dead works, and repent, must first have committed
dead works; this is incontrovertible.</p>

<p>As to the words of Vicecomes, they confirm the foregoing;
for, if the holy Supper was then administered to the baptized
after baptism; which Supper, as is taught in I Cor. 11:27, had
to be received with proper examination, and qualification, as,
according to history, was then still done, it follows that the
baptism of infants could not have been maintained among those
who practiced this, seeing infants are unfit for such
examination and qualification, and, consequently; also unfit to
become partakers of the holy Supper, which Vicecomes also
notices; for, referring, in the same place, to some among the
Romanists; he says, "But when the baptism of infants was
introduced, they [the infants] did not understand the virtue of
the heavenly food, the church abolished this custom (namely, of
administering the Supper to the baptized), that this holy
sacrament might not be dishonored thereby."</p>

</div><div id="255"> 

<p>From this it is quite evident, that at that time, not only
some who had separated from the Roman church, but even some who
belonged to the Roman church (perhaps, whole churches of .the
Romanists), still had the custom of administering the holy
Supper to all that had been baptized, and this with all proper
devotion; so that in those churches, it seems, nothing was
known, even as late as that time, of infant baptism, or, at
least, that it was not observed there, until the pope, or some
council ordained otherwise; for this is clearly expressed in
the 'words:."But when the baptism of infants was introduced,
the church abolished this custom."</p>

<p>Touching what is adduced <i>(B. H.,</i> p. 308, from <i>D.
hicecomes, lib.</i> 5, cap, 37), concerning the infant Supper,
as though it might have obtained in the time of Theophilact, it
is refuted by the writer himself, in said passage; for he
explains it as having reference to the Supper of believing,
baptized Christians, saying, that it was administered to the
baptized till infant baptism came into vogue, and</p>

<p>that it was then (because infants were unfit for it)
abolished.</p>

<p>In regard to this, the writer who records it, has the
following words to the shame of those who did so, "Cannot these
foolish saints," says he"for the same reason, also abolish
infant baptism, which is not a less, but; on account of the
effectual regeneration, a greater sacrament, than the Supper?"
<i>B. H., page</i> 308. He means to say: If the Supper, which
it was customary to administer to believers after baptism, was
abolished, when infant baptism came into vogue, because infants
have not the ability to worthily prepare themselves for the
Supper; how great a folly is it, then, that infant baptism was
not also abolished for the same reason; seeing that not less,
but more, is required for baptism than for the Supper, namely,
an <i>effectual regeneration?</i> For which reason also baptism
is a greater sacrament than the Supper. Certainly, this was a
forcible argument in refutation of those who, having introduced
infant baptism, had therefore abolished the Supper which used
to be administered after baptism; and who considered infants
better qualified for baptism than for the Supper.</p>

<p><i>About</i> A. <i>D. 980. Bapt. Hist., pages</i> 578, 579.
Vicecomes quotes from Simon Metaphrastes, <i>lib. 1, cap.</i>
5. the following occurrence, "That Theridates, with his wife and
the chief persons of the land were baptized in the river
Euphrates."</p>

<p><i>Page</i> 580."Greg. Martyr enjoined upon Theridates and
those who desired )to be baptized, a fast of thirty days, then
instructed them one after another, and thereupon baptized them
in the Euphrates.",From <i>Vicecom., lib.</i> 3, cap. 6.</p>

<p>D. Vicecomes <i>(lib. 1, cap.</i> 14), relates how Namesius,
came to the water, towards evening, descended into it, and was
baptized, in the name of the Father, the Son, and the Holy
Ghost. From <i>Metaphr., in vita Steph.</i> In <i>lib.</i> 3,
cap. 3, he writes, how Odympius, with his wife, Exuperia, and
his only son, Theodulus, in the night came to Sympronius, fell
down at his feet, and said, "We have recently learned to know
the power of Christ, that He is truly God. We therefore pray
thee, to see that we receive baptism, in the name of Christ,
whom thou preachest."' Sympronius answered them, "If you repent
with your whole heart, God will be so gracious as to receive
you as penitents." Then said Olympius, "This we will immediately
do." From <i>Metaphr., in vita Steph. B. H., page</i> 579,
<i>num. 10.</i></p>

<p><i>Page</i> 580, <i>num. 14.</i> "This same Olympius, when he
desired to become a Christian, was bidden to break the idols
with his own hands, to melt the gold and silver of which they
were made, with fire, and to gather the poor, and distribute it
among them. This, the writer says, Olympius faithfully did." D.
<i>hicecom., lib.</i> 3, <i>cap.</i> 13.</p>

<p>NOTE.-Page 851, it is related of Placidus, his wife Trajana,
and his two sons, how they went to the teacher., etc.; and how
the latter instructed and <i>eventually</i> baptized them;
changed their names; administered the Supper to them; wished
everything good to them, and said, "Depart! -the true peace of
Christ go with you." From <i>Metaphr.,</i> according to
<i>hic.ecom., lib.</i> 5, <i>cap.</i> 45.</p>

<p>Still other similar examples, which it would take too long
to recount, are adduced in said place, and elsewhere, in the
History of Baptism. The persons mentioned in all these
examples, those who were baptized as well as those who
baptized, we pass by without commenting on them; our object
here being simply to show that said Simon Metaphrastes, who is
stated to have lived and written about this time, described the
foregoing matters as good and praiseworthy examples of the
believing, baptized Christians, and left them to posterity, for
instruction.</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 1000.-Or at the close of the tenth
century, there is noticed in Jacob Mehrning's History of
Baptism, Fulbertus Carnotanses, who compares the descending in
baptism to the burying of Christ in the earth, and the arising
from baptism to the resurrection of Christ from the grave, or,
properly speaking, to the awakening of Christ to life.*</p>

<p>His own words can be found, translated into German, page
581, from <i>Fulbert. Carnot.</i> in <i>Epist. ad
Adcodatum.</i> Herewith we conclude our account of baptism in
the tenth century, and proceed to the pious martyrs who
suffered in those days for the name of Jesus Christ.</p>

<br /><cite>* what Fulbertus says, in this comparison, of
baptism, is, as far as the sense is concerned, identical with
that which Paul, Rom. 6:4, declares of the baptism of
believers, saying, "Therefore we are buried with him by baptism
unto death: that like as Christ was raised up from the dead by
the glory of the Father, even so we also should walk in newness
of life."</cite> 

 

<h1>AN ACCOUNT OF THOSE WHO SUFFERED IN THE TENTH CENTURY: SUMMARY OF THE MARTYRS WHO SUFFERED IN THE TENTH CENTURY</h1>

</div><div id="256"> 
<p>[About the year 910, we again refer to Giselbert (see our
Account of Holy Baptism), who teaches, as it were, for the
consolation of the martyrs who could not receive water baptism,
that it is in God's power to show mercy to them on account of
their good will.</p>

<p>Lamentable persecution of the Christians in the region of
Cordova, by the Arabians, instituted by their King
Habdarrhaghman, A. D. <i>923.</i></p>

<p>Eugenia, an upright Christian woman, beheaded for the
testimony of Jesus Christ, near Cordova, in said year,
<i>923.</i></p>

<p>Pelagius, a lad of thirteen years, beheaded after his arms
and legs were cut off, on account of the true Christian faith,
at Cordova, A. D. <i>925.</i></p>

<p>An extract from the account of P. J. Twisck, touching the
martyrdom of the youth Pelagius.</p>

<p>Note containing further explanation respecting the
confession of faith of Eugenia and Pelagius.</p>

<p>Of the cruel persecution instituted by the Danish King Worm
against the Christian believers, A. D. <i>926.</i></p>

<p>A note containing further explanatory remarks concerning the
last-mentioned persecution, and that other similar persecutions
are to be understood and explained in the same manner.</p>

<p>A deplorable persecution of the Christians, caused by Udo,
the Sclavonian prince, A. D. <i>950.</i></p>

<p>Marginal note, of the terrible pillage and burning
perpetrated by the Saracens among the Christians in Syria, A.
D. <i>964.</i></p>

<p>Circumstantial account of the severe persecution of
Christians by the Vandals, in the borders of Hamburg,
Brandenburg, Havelburg, and the adjacent countries, A. D.
<i>984.</i></p>

<p>Marginal note, how, seven years afterwards. namely, A. D.
991, the Normans came from Denmark into Germany, and there, for
about forty years, greatly vexed the Christians; and that the
Arabians, from A. D. <i>622</i> to 1300, committed much
mischief in nearly every country of Europe, or
Christendom.]</p>

<h2>ABOUT THE YEAR, A. D. <i>910</i></h2> 

<p>In our account of holy baptism for A. D. 910, we introduced
the very learned, but, by his adversaries, much accused,
Giselbert, who, through the exigency of that time, had to live
under the Roman church, though he decidedly opposed her
superstitions, especially in the matter of baptism. He taught
concerning holy baptism as connected with regeneration and a
good will. He also added, for explanation (on John 3:5), "If any
one (through obstacles, or otherwise) cannot receive external
baptism, it is in God's power to graciously accept his good
<i>will." Ex. Cent. Magd. 10, cap. 4. Bapt. Hist., 2d part,
page</i> 567.</p>

<p>Hence, when Giselbert here consoles, in some measure, those
who, from necessity, had to remain without baptism, with the
mercifulness of God, who has it in His power to show mercy,
even in the absence of baptism, to those who are of a good
will, it seems that at that time there must have been an
oppression or persecution of the Christian believers; for at
such times it frequently happens that there are people of a
good will, namely, who desire to be baptized upon the true
faith on Jesus Christ, but who nevertheless, on account of the
persecution, and the dispersion of the churches and their
teachers, cannot attain to it, as we have shown by living
examples, in different places of our account of the
martyrs.</p>

<p>Thus, when people who had not been baptized, yet had a
desire to be baptized, were apprehended and put in bonds for
the testimony of the Lord, it was frequently seen, that they
could not obtain complete peace in their hearts, though they
firmly believed in the Lord, and had resolved to give
expression to, and confirm, such faith not only by words, but
also in deed, yea, with their blood and steadfast death. On
these occasions, or against these emergencies, the pious and
soul-seeking teachers often consoled such people, strengthened
their hearts, and caused them to hope instead of despair; since
God has it in His power, to show mercy to, yea, to save, such,
even without baptism, for the sake of their good will or
intention, if it has not been neglected on purpose and
presumptuously.</p>

<p>This the above-mentioned Giselbert taught, and thus he
consoled the well-disposed unbaptized; hence, our foregoing
conclusion may be regarded as true, namely, that there was, at
that time, a persecution on account of the word of the Lord,
which made it necessary to add said consolation for the
afore-mentioned persons. But as this is based merely on a
probable conjecture, since it is not expressed in clear words,
we will leave it, and give an account of a certain persecution
which, about thirteen years after this, was raised by the
Arabians against the Christians, and ended after much misery
and distress.</p>

<h2>A LAMENTABLE PERSECUTION OF THE CHRISTIANS IN THE REGION OF CORDOVA, BY THE ARABIANS, INSTITUTED BY THEIR KING HABDARRHAGHMAN, A. D. 923</h2> 

<p>A. D. 923, a terrible persecution was raised by the Arabians
against the Christian believers, in the region of Cordova. This
occurred mainly through the wickedness of the Arabian King
Habdarrhaghman IV, who allowed himself to be called protector
of the law of God, and king of the believers; but, being filled
with bitter hatred against the true law of Jesus Christ, and,
consequently, also against the true Christian believers, he
considered and declared</p>

</div><div id="257"> 

<p>all Christians unbelievers and despisers of the law of God.
But he did not stop at this, but raged against therri in an
awful manner, yea, persecuted them with fire and sword. One
thing, however, in connection with this grieves us to the very
heart, namely, that the records of the pious witnesses of Jesus
Christ who were killed by him, have all been lost, except of
two, namely, Eugenia and a youth of thirteen years; of whom we
shall give an account presently. Touching said persecution,
compare A. <i>Mell., 2d book, fol. 312, col. 2,</i> with
<i>Ruderic., Archiep. Tolet., and AM. Rer. Hisp.
Script.</i></p>

<h2>EUGENIA, AN UPRIGHT CHRISTIAN WOMAN, BEHEADED FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, NEAR THE CITY OF CORDOVA, A. D. <i>923</i></h2> 

<p>It is recorded that A. D. <i>923,</i> an upright Christian
woman, called Eugenia, was apprehended in the afore-mentioned
persecution, and, remaining steadfast in the confession of the
faith in the Son of God, was beheaded, on the sixteenth of
March, A. D. <i>923,</i> through the tyrant and persecutor
Habdarrhaghman.</p>

<p>It is stated that in digging the foundation of some
building, in a village called Marmolejos, near Cordova, where
she was martyred, an epitaph was found, the first letters of
each line of which spelled her name: <i>Eugenia Martyr,</i>
that is, Eugenia the Witness (namely, of Jesus), as a token
that she had died for the testimony of Jesus her Saviour. There
could be gathered from it, further, the time when this took
place, as well as the manner in which she was put to death,
namely, that she was beheaded with the sword, at the time
indicated above.*</p>

<h2>PELAGIUS, A LAD OF THIRTEEN YEARS, AFTER MUCH SUFFERING FOR THE TRUE CHRISTIAN FAITH, AT CORDOVA, HAS HIS ARMS AND LEGS CUT OFF, AND IS FINALLY BEHEADED, A. D. 925</h2> 

<p>It is stated that about two years after, namely, A. D. 925,
a lad of thirteen years, called Pelagius, was put to death for
the name of Christ, in Cordova, which occurred as follows: His
uncle, Ermoigus (who by some writers is called a bishop),
having been apprehended and imprisoned at Cordova, by the
Arabian King Habdarrhaghman, said Ermoigus, in order to be
released, left his nephew, who was then only about thirteen
years old, in his stead, as a pledge, which for more than three
years was not redeemed, either through the neglect of his
friends, or because the king would not let go the youth, who
was now very comely and wellmannered.</p>

<br /><cite>* For further comments respecting Eugenia's
confession of faith, see the explanation which we shall append
to the account of the death of Pelagius.</cite> 
<p> In the meantime, this
lad exercised himself diligently in the Christian religion, to
prepare himself for his martyrdom, which seemed to him to be
drawing near. When he was about thirteen and a half years old,
he was brought before the king, and, standing there,
immediately began to confess his faith, declaring that he was
ready to die for it.* But the king, having in view something
else than to hear the confession of the Son of God, or of the
Christian faith, proposed to the youth, who was quite innocent
in evil, some improper things, which this hero of Christ
valiantly and in a Christian manner refused, willing rather, to
die an honorable death for the name of Christ, than to live
shamefully with the devil, and pollute both soul and body with
such an abominable sin. The king, hoping that he could yet be
persuaded, commanded his servants to ply him with fair
promises, to the effect, that, if he would apostatize, he
should be brought up with royal splendor at the court of the
king. But the Lord, in whom he trusted, strengthened him
against all the allurements of this world, so that he said, "I
am a Christian, and will remain a Christian, and obey only
Christ's commands all the days of my life.</p>

<p>The king, seeing that he remained steadfast, was filled with
rage, and commanded his guards to take him, suspend him by iron
tongs, and pinch him and haul him up and down until he should
either die or renounce Christ as his Lord. But having undergone
all this, he was as fearless as ever, and refused not to suffer
still more tortures, even unto death.</p>

<p>When the tyrant perceived the immovable steadfastness of
this youth, he commanded that they should cut him limb from
limb, and throw the pieces into the river. As he thus stood
before the king, dripping with blood, from his previous
tortures, he prayed to none than to Jesus Christ our Lord,
saying, "O Lord, deliver me out of the hands of my enemies."
When he lifted up his hands to God [in prayer], the
executioners pulled them apart and cut off first one arm, and
then the other; thus also his legs, and, lastly, his head. When
this was done, the pieces were thrown into the river.</p>

<p>Thus this young hero and pious witness of Jesus Christ ended
his life, on the 29th of June, A. D. 925, his martyrdom having
lasted from seven o'clock in the morning until evening. See the
firstmentioned writer, who has given the account of the Arabian
persecution, on the page referred to, third column, compared
with <i>Raguele in Append., ab Eulog., super Pelagium.</i></p>

<h2>EXTRACT FROM THE ACCOUNT OF P. J. TWISCK, TOUCHING THE MARTYRDOM OF THE YOUTH PELAGIUS</h2>
<p>When Habdarrhaghman, the king of the Arabians, had, from
bishop Ermoigus, his nephew Pelagius, as a pledge or hostage,
the tyrant tore</p>

   <br /><cite>* "To die for the name of Christ," our author says.</cite> 

</div><div id="258"> 

<p>him with redhot tongs; and, having been torn limb from limb,
he was thrown into the nearest river, when he was scarcely
thirteen years old." <i>Chron., 10th book,</i> fol. 329, col.
1, from <i>Merulae.,</i> fol. 621.</p>

<p>NOTE.-Neither of Eugenia nor of the youth Pelagius have we
been able (as in the case of other martyrs before these), to
ascertain the particulars of their confession of faith, though
we have exerted ourselves not a little in this direction. It is
almost as if the records which no doubt treated more fully of
it, were buried in the earth, like the epitaph of Eugenia. Oh,
that this were certain, and that the spot were known-without
contradiction, no pains would be spared to obtain them, if it
were possible; since thereby, .according to our opinion, the
bright light of evangelical truth would come to light pure and
clear in many points; whereas now, others, especially those of
the Roman church, have, whenever it has pleased them, dimmed
and perceptibly obscured, with the smoke of their human
inventions, the blessed confessors of Jesus Christ and their
confessions.</p>

<p>But what do our lamentations avail? We must content
ourselves with what has remained. It may be that said
particular confessions, together with the records of the
suffering and death of many other martyrs (of which we spoke in
the beginning) were lost through the violence of the
persecution, or perished in some other way.</p>

<p>This persecution has not been so fortunate an one for the
searchers of ancient memoirs, as some of the preceding ones of
which we know; for these other persecutions already spoken of,
however severe and fierce they may have been, besides giving
clearer light as regards the confessions, have through the
carefulness of some writers, generally furnished and left for
remembrance, a respectable number of martyrs either mentioned
or unmentioned; while this persecution, although very many were
slain in it, tells us of but two persons.</p>

<p>But though we, unable to obtain more, must content ourselves
with the bare circumstances, still the afore-mentioned martyrs,
Eugenia and Pelagius, shall not be esteemed the less by us; yet
not, that we would regard them without fault in all points, for
who on earth is perfect? but we hold that they were free from
such blemishes as separate one from Christ or deprive him of
the name of a true martyr, though he might suffer for his
faith's sake. The uprightness of said persons, in faith as well
as in life, may readily be inferred from the circumstances
mentioned in the account of the ancients, which, though brief
and few, nevertheless indicate these things.</p>

<p>What the faith of Eugenia and Pelagius was, appears from
their confessions. Eugenia is for this reason called
<i>martyr,</i> which signifies according to the Greek language,
<i>the witness;</i> by which name, even in and about the time
of the apostles, those were wont to be called, who had laid
down their lives, or, at least, had suffered much, for the pure
and genuine testimony of Jesus their Saviour. Of the youth
Pelagius, the authors write that he confessed his faith and
declared that he was ready to die (upon said faith) for the
name of Christ. Also, that in his suffering he called upon no
other than his Lord Jesus Christ, saying, "O Lord, deliver me
out of the hands of my enemies."</p>

<p>Concerning the life of both of these martyrs, it appears to
have been upright in every respect, as regards the grand
resolution which each severally had-not only to confess the
Lord with the mouth, and to follow Him with works in the
regeneration, but also to honor and magnify His holy name, by
offering up their lives through a violent death; as well as
that they not only had resolved and determined to do this, but
also actually fulfilled their resolution, which is the most
important of all.</p>

<p>From the accounts given we have learned that Pelagius
said, "I am a Christian, and will remain a Christian, and obey
only the commandments of Christ all the days of my life." He
desired to obey only the commands of his Saviour, and not human
inventions, and this, to the end of his life; which he also
did, according to his ability. Moreover, we have not found
anything, either of Eugenia or of Pelagius, in authentic
writers, which conflicts with the above good testimony
respecting the faith and life of said two persons; nor of
priestcraft, nor of papal or episcopal inventions, nor of Roman
factitious practices, although these things were much in vogue
at that time. With this, we think to have treated the matter
sufficiently, and hence we will leave it and proceed in our
account.</p>

<h2>A CRUEL PERSECUTION, INSTITUTED BY THE DANISH KING WORM AGAINST THE CHRISTIAN BELIEVERS, A. D. 926</h2> 

<p>It is recorded that A. D. 926, there appeared, from another
quarter than the one of which we have spoken, namely, from
Denmark, a cruel tyrant who was king of said country, and whose
name accorded well with his deeds. His name was Worm, and
whatever he did was gnawing, biting, and devouring, so that he
inflicted much vexation, misery and grief upon the followers of
the Christian faith, in persecuting, tormenting, and, as
appears, killing and destroying them.</p>

<p>Of this tyrant, P. J. Twisck makes mention with these
words, "At this time, there was in Denmark, King Worm, a cruel
tyrant and persecutor of the Christian faith." <i>Chron., fol.
329,</i> col. 1, from <i>Leonh., lib. 4, fol. 190.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-King Worm was not the first tyrant that had arisen in
Denmark, seeing we spoke in the preceding century of the
tyranny which the Danes then practiced against the Christian
believers. Just before the account of this Danish persecution
we lamented, and this, for good reasons, that not more than two
martyrs are mentioned in the whole persecution; and but very
little of their confessions, except the circumstances. But here
we have still more reason for regret, since not a single
person</p>

</div><div id="259"> 

<p>is mentioned of all those who were persecuted and martyred,
though their number, it seems, was very great. Moreover, their
confession of faith, upon which, nevertheless many; to all
appearance, suffered and were martyred or put to death, is not
mentioned at all. Still, this matter, is not utterly devoid of
light or information, seeing it is stated of the tyrant who
instituted said persecution, that he was a persecutor of the
Christian faith.</p>

<p>Whether, then, he persecuted all who bore the name of
Christians, or only the Christian believers (who seem to have
been had in view here), it is evident, that the true and
sincere believers, who, having no settled place of abode, being
scattered throughout the world, did not escape; for they
necessarily often had to live among the nominal, yea, among the
wicked Christians, with whom they frequently, when distress
arose, had to suffer, though not for the same reason. I will
not speak of the fact that the wicked Christians themselves,
whenever it pleased them, persecuted the faithful and good
Christians exceedingly, and, after many torments, put them to
death in a worse manner than the heathen did; so that, to all
appearance, said tyrant, when he persecuted the Christian
believers, or, as our author says, the <i>Christian faith,</i>
he puts to death not a few, or, at least here, and there some,
of the orthodox and true Christians, on account of their faith;
besides what they often had to suffer from others.</p>

<p>Here we will let the matter rest, and will take a similar
view, and judge in like manner, according to the nature and
rule of divine love, also of other persecutions of the
Christian believers, of which we may subsequently speak; taking
care, however, not to present persecutions concerning which
there may be evidence that those persecuted were not faithful
and sincere, but merely apparent or professed Christians; for
the former, we shall search, but the latter we shall avoid. We
shall now proceed in our task.</p>

<h2>A MISERABLE PERSECUTION OF THE CHRISTIANS, CAUSED BY UDO, THE PRINCE OF THE SLAVES (SLAVONIANS), A. D. 950</h2> 

<p>About twenty-four years after the beginning of the
afore-mentioned persecution, instituted by the Danish king, a
very dark cloud arose over the Christian believers, from
Slavonia, which threatened a heavy rain or outpouring of the
blood of the innocent and defenseless Christians. For, one Udo,
Prince of the Slaves, manifested himself very cruelly against
the Christian believers, and proved to be a great tyrant over
them. But he finally received his reward from one of his own
stamp, though a Saxon, who took his life. Concerning this, we
read in <i>Chran. van den Onderg., page 334, col. 2,</i> the
following words (except the parenthesis), "Udo, the Prince of
the Slaves, an atrocious persecutor of the Christians, and a
great tyrant (who lived at his time), was thrust through by a
Saxon" From <i>Hist. Andy., fol. 182.</i></p>

<p>Compare this account with the explanation contained in the
note on the persecution of A. D. 926; as the circumstances of
the persecution of A. D. 950 must be explained in the same
manner.</p>

<p>NOTE. <i>A. D: 964,</i> fourteen years after the last
persecution, the Christians in Syria had to suffer much; yet
not so much on their bodies as in their property. This was done
through the violent pillage and burning perpetrated by the
Saracens, of which I have found this account, among others, "A. D. <i>964,</i> in the reign of this Emperor (namely, N..
Phocas, the fifty-seventh who reigned in the Orient, at
Constantinople), the Saracens did great damage to the
Christians in Syria, by robbing and burning." See P. J.
<i>Twisck, page 340, col. 1,</i> from <i>Chron, Meldncth., lib.
4.</i> Who shall say that this was not brought upon them on
account of the confession of the Christian faith? or that among
said people there were not some faithful and sincere
Christians, who suffered for living according to their true
faith? This could hardly be said, much less proved, since the
orthodox, though sometimes few in number, could be found in
almost every country; however, since said matter is obscure, we
will not enter further into it.</p>

<h2>A SEVERE PERSECUTION OF THE CHRISTIANS, BY THE VANDALS, IN THE BORDERS OF HAMBURG, BRANI?ENBURG, HAVELBURG, AND THE ADJACENT COUNTRIES, A. D. <i>984</i></h2> 

<p>In the time of Emperor Otho III, or A. D. <i>984,</i>
Mistavus, King of the Vandals, instituted (according to the
testimony of the ancients) a severe persecution against the
Christian believers, in the borders of Hamburg, Brandenburg,
Havelburg, and the adjacent countries; we will say nothing of
his tyranny at Altenburg, since this, as can be seen, was
directed chiefly against the Romanists.</p>

<p>This persecution was caused by the hatred which the King of
the Vandals held against Otho III, because the latter, having
intended to give him his daughter in marriage, afterwards
refused to do it, on account of the opposition of Theodoric,
Margrave of Brandenburg, who said that he ought not to give
such a noble maiden to a dog (so he called Mistavus, the King
of the Vandals). Mistavus, enraged at this, resolved to revenge
himself of it, yet not on those who had injured him, namely,
Otho and Theodoric, who were the chiefs of said countries; but
on their subjects, who were certainly quite innocent of that
which their chiefs had done; but this is generally the case
that subjects must suffer for the misdeeds of their rulers.</p>

<p>He then assailed those Christians who lived nearest,
persecuting them in an atrocious manner, a grievous matter for
human nature, but pleasant for the spirit, namely, of those
who, through love, were inseparably united to their God and
Saviour, and,</p>

</div><div id="260"> 

<p>hence, could say with Paul, "Neither death, nor life, nor
angels, nor principalities, nor powers, nor things present, nor
things to come, nor height, nor depth, nor any other creature,
shall be able to separate us from the love of God, which is in
Christ Jesus our Lord" (Rom. 8:38, 39) .</p>

<p>Concerning the tyrant Mistavus, the author of their
distress, it is stated that he raised a violent persecution, A.
D. 984, against the Christians living in the countries lying
nearest; also, that Hamburg, Brandenburg, and Havelburg, had
their share of said persecution. Compare P. J. <i>Tzwisck,
page</i> 248, col. 2, with the account of <i>Merula, fol.</i>
649, and <i>Georg. Hist., lib.</i> 5.</p>

<p>The reader, in order to understand aright our object in
noting this persecution, will please read, and accept as
explanatory of the last-mentioned persecution, the different
notes which we have placed throughout this century.</p>

<p>NOTE.-Seven years after the persecution which we have just
related, namely A. D. 991, the Normans came from Denmark into
Germany, where they began to greatly vex the Christians, which
lasted about forty years, that is, for over thirty years after
the close of this century. P. J. <i>Twisck, Chron., page</i>
351, col. 1, from <i>Chron. Avont, lib. 4. hinc., fol.</i> 502.
Moreover, that the Arabians (of whom we made mention in our
account of the first open persecution in this century, for the
year 923), not only at this time, but from A. D. 622 to 1300,
like a swarm of destructive grasshoppers, overran nearly every
country of the known world, to the great distress and misery of
many Christian believers, can be read at large in the history
of the Turks; of which brief mention is made in A.
<i>Mell.,</i> 2d <i>book, fol.</i> 312, ,col. 4, and fol. 313,
col. 1.</p><br />

<br />

 <h1>AN ACCOUNT OF THE HOLY BAPTISM IN THE ELEVENTH CENTURY: A SUMMARY OF BAPTISM IN THE ELEVENTH CENTURY</h1>

<p>[In the beginning of the eleventh century, the celebrated
Anselm is introduced, who declares that baptism is
the"fulfilling of all righteousness;" that the baptis~ of
Christ is a"washing of water in the word;" that everyone, in
his day, was baptized in the name and the faith of God; that
believers were then baptized upon, or in the name of Christ;
that the adults had first to be instructed in the Christian
doctrine; that after baptism one must not again lay the
foundation of repentance from dead works, Heb. 6:1-3; that
believers are brought into the church of Christ (understand,
through baptism); that the twelve Ephesian men (Acts 19) were
rebaptized by Paul.</p>

<p>Algerus speaks of the power and operation of God in baptism;
also, that the lasciviousness of the flesh is quenched or
washed off in or through baptism.</p>

<p>Buchard of Worms gives an excellent explana ion touching
baptism, saying that the examinations in the faith were for the
purpose of ascertaining whether the holy words of the faith
confessed, were rooted deeply in the heart of the candidate,
and whether he intended to continue steadfastly in the
faith.</p>

<p>Lanfrancus opposed infant baptism.</p>

<p>The testimony of Bruno and Berengarius against infant
baptism as well as against transubstantiation is presented and
amply commented on; the time when they began their doctrine,
and when they finished the same; also their death.</p>

<p>A certain book of ceremonies by the ancient Beroldus is
introduced; what we read in it concerning baptism; namely, of
the first address made to the novices at baptism, the way of
wisdom and faith, being presented to them.</p>

<p>An account of Ado Trevirensis, and to what he admonished the
candidates of his time; also, how he baptized the believing
woman Syranna and her son, after previous instruction.</p>

<p>The last witness adduced about baptism is Juo of Carnuto,
who, besides various other matters, makes this salutary and
true declaration with regard to baptism, "That the novices would
confess the creed before baptism; that they were then, while
answering, washed from the old wickedness; that their baptism
took place on the holy Easter Sabbath, and that they were first
instructed; that those who desired baptism had to throw off, by
prayers, the yoke of the devil; that they were asked: Do you
believe on God," etc. Thereupon it is noted what said passages
of Juo indicate. Finally it is shown that he also opposed
monachism, discrimination as regards food. Conclusion.]</p>

<p>The thousandth year is finished; we have come to the years
that follow it; which time is called the eleventh century. We
will wander through it in our thoughts, and investigate how it
then stood with the true church of God, whether the ordinances
of Christ, especially in the matter of baptism; and its
requirements, were rightly observed. In order to begin and
finish this aright, we will turn to some of the ancient authors
who wrote about the condition of said matters, at that time,
or, at least, who subsequently made mention of what then
occurred with regard to religion.</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 1010, or, as Jacob Mehrning puts it,"In
the beginning of the eleventh century," there manifested
himself, by various writings, the celebrated and almost
universally known Anselm, who, having at one time, it seems,
advocated infant baptism, with divers forcible, yet human
arguments, now and also subsequently showed, that the opposite
belief had taken root in him; concerning which, it is stated,
that there have remained even to the present day, several
excellent things, which cannot well be reconciled with infant
baptism, yea, which, when viewed with spiritual eyes, militate
against it. Of these we will present a few as ex-</p>

</div><div id="261"> 

<p>amples, confident that, if you judge impartially, you will
concur with us, or, at least, assent to it.*</p>

<p><i>In Bapt. Hist., page 582,</i> from <i>Cent. Magd. XL,
cap. 4,</i> of baptism, Anselm teaches on Matt. 3, that baptism
is necessary, and says, "Baptism is a fulfilling of all
righteousness; a man may be never so righteous, pious,
benevolent, abstemious, and chaste, yet, it avails him nothing,
if he lacks the grace of holy baptism."</p>

<p>It is evident that Anselm has regard here to what Jesus
Christ our Saviour said to John, when the latter refused to
baptize him with water."Suffer it to be so now," the Lord
said,"for thus it becometh us to fulfill all righteousness."
Matt. 3:15; which took place, according to Luke <i>3:23,</i>
when Jesus began to be about thirty years of age, and the
people, who came from Jerusalem, were baptized by John in
Jordan.</p>

<p>It having been observed then that Anselm has regard to the
baptism of Christ, and that Christ calls it the fulfilling of
all righteousness, it is manifest, that he does not speak of
infant baptism here, since in the same no righteousness at all,
much less, all righteousness, can be fulfilled; which is the
more obvious, when he says, in the same place, that however
righteous, pious, benevolent, abstemious and chaste one might
be, it would avail him nothing, if he lacked the grace of holy
baptism: for, righteousness, piety, etc., are not exercises or
works of infants, but only of intelligent, yea, of devout
persons.</p>

<p><i>Oil the same page,</i> Anselm, on Ephes. <i>5,</i>
says, "The baptism of Christ is a washing of water 'in the word;
if you take away the water, it is no baptism; if you take away
the word, it is likewise no baptism."</p>

<p>What else is indicated thereby, than that the Word of God
cannot be separated from baptism? which Word of God, in
baptism, does not consist simply in this, that a few words, of
holy Scripture are pronounced in or over baptism, or over those
who are baptized; but that the word of faith is preached to the
candidates, before and at baptism. Xlark <i>16:15, 16;</i> Rom.
<i>10:8.</i></p>

<p><i>On page 583, nunl.. 6.</i> Anselm <i>(Enarrat. in</i>
Evang.) says, "That the Father was heard in a voice; that the
Holy Ghost descended in the form of a dove; and that the Son,
in His humanity, was baptized; this clearly indicates the Holy
Trinity, in whose name and in the belief of which, everyone of
us is baptized."</p>

<p>Here he again has reference to the baptism of Christ,
concerning which the holy evangelists state, that, when He,
being about thirty years of age, was baptized, the heavens were
opened above Him;</p>

<br /><cite>* With regard to what is attributed to Anselm,
concerning the suspicion in reference to infant baptism,
namely, that he (on Eph. 4 and Heb. 10.) agreed with Meginhard
(de Fide at Gunth.), we let those say, who can show more
evidence of it, than we have yet met with. In the mean time, we
have weighty reasons, which induce us to show the contrary
concerning him. The same is true also with regard to what he is
said to have written, touching said doctrine, on Matt. 15; I
Cor. 7, and in"Concordia Gratia, and lib. Arbitrii," _tc.;
which things as well as the above, we leave without comment,
reserving our explanation of them to ourselves.</cite>  
<p>that the Holy
Ghost descended like a dove upon Him; and that a voice came
from heaven (or, from God, His heavenly Father) saying, "This is
my beloved Son, in whom I am well pleased." Matt. <i>3:16,
17;</i> Mark 1:10,11; Luke <i>3:22.</i></p>

<p>All this, as has been stated above, can serve only as a type
of the baptism of the adult, intelligent, and believing
followers of Christ; which Anselm plainly indicates, when he
says, "In whose name and in the belief of which, everyone of us
is baptized." Notice, when he says,"Everyone of us," etc., he
indicates. each severally and all in general, namely, all who
belonged as members to the church of Christ; so that, according
to the language employed by him, each and all among them were
baptized, not only in the name of the Holy Trinity, but also in
or upon the belief of the same.</p>

<p><i>On page 585,</i> Anselm, on Rom. <i>6,</i> says, "We are
baptized into the death of Christ, that we, believing in His
death, and following it, may live as those who are dead; but
since we, through baptism, are dead to sin, we must not again
live unto sin, so that it is necessary again to die unto it;
for, we are baptized into the death, that is, in the likeness
of the death, of Christ; that, as He once died, and ever lives,
even so we, having once died to evil, should ever live to the
good; and, as a dead person can sin no more; thus also we, if
we have died with Christ, shall not let ourselves be entangled
again in mortal sins.</p>

<p>The sense of the words of Anselm is this: that we must be
careful, not to live in sin again after baptism, since the
former sins, in which we lived, have died through baptism, and
have been laid in the grave as it were, through the death of
Christ. Hence, said words can only be applied to the baptism of
the believing and penitent, but in no wise to the baptism of
infants; because it is certain that the things indicated as
requisite for baptism cannot exist in infants. For, how can
baptism be, in infants, a dying of their former sins, when they
have never lived in sin? How can .they have their sins buried,
through baptism, into the death of Christ, who never could nor
need die unto sin?</p>

<p>Thus, Anselm, in the afore-mentioned passage, speaks only of
the baptism of the adult, intelligent, and penitent Christians,
who, having died unto their former sins, had them buried
through baptism into the death of Christ, to rise to a new
life.</p>

<p>Page 588, num. 6, Anselm writes on Matt. 3, "The adults had
first to be instructed in the Christian doctrine." S. Clement
and others imposed upon those who had lived in wickedness, and,
becoming converted, desired to be baptized, a fast of seven
days, and sometimes more, as a preparation; moreover, a
considerable time, before baptism was also prescribed to the
catechumens who were to be baptized."</p>

<p>N. B."Thus," says the writer who has noted this,"the light
of the testimony of the truth shines forth brightly in the
midst of the darkness of popery."</p>

</div><div id="262"> 

<p>We will not enlarge on what the writer has added here, but
turn to words of Anselm, which we cannot view without plainly
seeing that he treats of the baptism of, the believing and
penitent;, for, when he speaks of the adults; of those who were
first instructed in the Christian doctrine; of those who,
having lived in wickedness, becoming converted; of those who
desired to be baptized; of the seven days' fast imposed upon
them; of the considerable time prescribed the catechumens who
were to be baptized, etc., it is clearly expressed thereby,
that the baptism of which he here speaks, is far different from
the baptism of infants, since these things can in no wise be
said of them.</p>

<p>On page 593, <i>num.</i> 5, D. Vicecomes quotes, lib. 2,
cap. 4, the following language of Anselm on the words of Paul,
Heb. 6:1-3:-"We will not lay again the foundation of repentance
from dead works, and of faith toward God, of baptism, of
doctrine, etc., that is, the doctrine which was delivered to
you in the beginning."</p>

<p>He explains the words of the apostle (Heb. 6:1-3), which, as
every one knows, were written to the believing Hebrew brethren,
who, having accepted Christ at the beginning of their faith,
had had the same sealed through baptism. They are here exhorted
to constancy in the faith accepted, and that they should not
return to the principles of the Christian religion, upon which
they had been baptized, but must go on to the perfection of the
same. This is what Anselm, from said words, sought to impress,
in his time, upon his fellowbelievers in the faith, to the end,
that they might observe their baptism and the confession of the
same, to the honor of God, the edification of their neighbor,
and the salvation of their own souls.</p>

<p><i>On same page,</i> Vicecomes, lib. 5, cap. 35, Anselm, on
Luke 2, says, "Even as Jesus, after the purification, was
brought into the Temple, so those who become believers, are
brought into the church of Christ."</p>

<p>When he speaks of those who, becoming believers, are brought
into the church of Christ, he has respect to such as, having
been baptized upon faith, are through this means, recognized
and received as members in the Christian church; for this is
the purpose for which this passage of Anselm is adduced in
<i>Bapt. Hist.</i></p>

<p>As to the twelve Ephesian men, of whom we read, Acts 19:1-5,
who had been baptized with the baptism of John, he asserts in
his explanation on Matt. 3, that they were rebaptized by Paul,
assigning as a reason of this, that the baptism of John could
not properly give remission of sins, because the blood of
Christ which blots out sin, had not then been shed; again,
because John, who was a forerunner of Christ's preaching, was
also (according to his explanation) a forerunner of
baptism.</p>

<p><i>About A. D. 1024,</i> close to, or a little after, the
time of Anselm, a place is given to one Algerus, who, though
writing somewhat obscurely on bap ism, gives so much light on
the subject, that an impartial Christian heart can readily
decide from it, that, in said matter, he followed the
evangelical truth, according to the doctrine of Christ and the
practice of His apostles; in proof of which we will present a
few examples.</p>

<p><i>In Bapt. Hist. page</i> 583.-Algerus says <i>(lib.</i> 3,
<i>de Euchar, cap.</i> 3), "Who can regenerate a child of the
devil to a child of God, except God the Father? Who can justify
sinners, except He who died for our sins? And, since everything
which is done in baptism, is spiritual, who can perform it,
except the Holy Ghost?"</p>

<p>He tells in the above place, whence baptism has its power,
and whence its operations chiefly proceed; and certainly, he
does not seek, find, or show it in the water, as is done by
many who, at the present day, baptize infants, especially by
the Romanists; but he seeks, finds, and shows it in the
operation of God the Lord, whom he calls by the name of Father,
Son, and Holy Ghost. To God the Father he ascribes, that He
regenerates the candidate from a child of the devil to a child
of God. Of the Son he states, that He, having died for our
sins, justifies sinners when they are baptized. Of the Holy
Ghost he says, that, since all that is done in baptism, is
spiritual, so all that is effected in baptism, is spiritually
performed by the Holy Ghost. Now, let everyone judge, without
prejudice, whether such operations can have place in infants,
or in adults (when they are baptized); and we are confident
that the instant reply will be, that not the former, but the
latter, is conformable to the truth.</p>

<p><i>Page</i> 585, <i>num.</i> 9. Of the power and benefit of
baptism, Algerus says (lib. 3, <i>de Euchar., cap.</i> 4,), "In order that the grace of God may abound over us, it has
reference, in the sacramental form (namely, of baptism) not so
much to worthiness and respectability, as to their equal
fitness'; for, as water quenches, cleanses and purifies, better
than all other liquids, even so baptism quenches the
lasciviousness of the flesh, and washes off the impurity of
sin, of actual sins as well as," etc.</p>

<p>Here, again, several things are mentioned, which are not
applicable to infant baptism, but speak sufficiently against
it. For, in the first place, when it is here said of the grace
of God, that it has reference, in the sacramental form (namely,
of baptism) not so much to the worthiness or respectability,
namely, of the persons to whom the sacramental form, or
baptism, may be administered, as to their equal fitness; there
is certainly indicated, in the candidates, some fitness to
which the grace of God has regard; but what fitness can there
be in the candidates, to which the grace of God may have
regard, if it is not faith in Jesus Christ, true repentance,
obedience to God's commandments, and such like things as are
requisite to baptism?</p>

<p>In the second place, when it is averred in said passage"that
baptism quenches the lasciviousness of the flesh, and washes
off the umpurity of sin, of</p>

</div><div id="263"> 

<p>actual sin as well as," etc., it is evident, again, that he
treats of such a baptism and of such candidates, wherein
lasciviousness of the flesh, impurity of sin, yea, actual sins,
etc., can be washed off;for, otherwise he would contradict
himself. But what kind of persons these are, in whom such sins
can have place, and who need to be washed from them, whether
infants or adult persons are meant thereby, the intelligent may
judge.</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 1042.-Or almost in the middle of the
eleventh century, Buchard of Worms (in Germany) flourished, who
makes mention, among other things, of the examinations in the
faith, to which it was customary, either in his time or before,
to subject the candidates, at baptism. Concerning this, D.
Vicecomes <i>(lib.</i> 2, cap. 28), in his allegations
respecting baptism in the eleventh century, gives the following
account, which is also found in <i>Bapt. Hist., page</i> 592,
mum. 1, "Buehard of Worms <i>(lib. 6, de Sacram. Eccles.)</i>
says: 'The examinations are for the purpose of ascertaining
whether he (the candidate), after renouncing Satan, has the
holy words of the faith confessed, deeply rooted in his heart,
and intends to continue steadfastly in the faith."'</p>

<p>This is certainly plain language concerning baptism upon
faith and the confession of the same, according to the
institution of Christ, and the example of the apostles and the
first apostolical church; hence we need add not a word of
explanation, and will therefore proceed to others who, in or
about that time, taught the same doctrine, and, as much as lay
in their ability, confirmed it in their deeds.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1051.-This is the year in which the learned
Lanfrancus, who also showed himself opposed to infant baptism,
and dissuaded from it, is introduced by the writers. See P. 1.
Twisck, <i>Chron., page 383, col.</i> 1, from <i>Guitmundus,
and Sebastian Franck, fol.</i> 58.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1060.-Two eminent, learned, and wellmeaning
persons, who were greatly celebrated on. account of their great
learning and boldness, at this time displayed their greatest
strength in rejecting infant baptism and other articles of the
Roman church. One of these was Bruno, Bishop of Angiers in
France; the other, Berengarius, his deacon. They had begun to
teach said doctrine as early as the year <i>1035,</i> and
continued therein for many years, yea, Berengarius, besides the
article against transubstantiation, maintained it, as the
chronicles show, until .the year 1079.</p>

<p>But, in order to sum up all this briefly, we will present
what is recorded, concerning this matter, in the
<i>Introduction to the Martyrs' Mirror, page</i> 48, col. 2, we
read, "In A. D. <i>1035,</i> Berengarius, arch deacon of
Amgiers, in France, together with Bruno, the Bishop of said
city, began to teach against transubstantiation and infant
baptism. Their doctrine immediately spread throughout all
France and Germany. Against it, Pope Leo IX held, A. D. 1050,
two synods, one at Rome, the other at Versailles <i>(Baron., A.
D. 1050, mum. 1),</i> in which the doctrine of these two men
was condemned.</p>

<p>Afterwards, when Berengarius did not cease to promulgate his
doctrine, another synod was held, A. D. 1055, -at Tours in
France <i>(Baron., A. D.</i> 1055, mum. 4), in which
Berengarius feigned repentance; but as soon as Hildebrand, who
afterwards became pope, had gone away, he again maintained his
doctrine., "Afterwards, Pope Nicholas II held a synod <i>(Baron., A.
D.</i> 1059, <i>mum. 3, 4),</i> and summoned Berengarius before
it, who, for the second time, either from fear or human
weakness, pretended to recant, burning the writings of Johannes
Scotus, from which he had derived his views respecting
transubstantiation; but seeing immediately opportunity again,
he returned to his old belief; and composed different writings
concerning it, against which some others have written., "Subsequently, Hildebrand, who had now become pope, and was
called Gregory VII, held a synod in Rome, A. D. 1079, where, as
Baronius, who judges as a Romanist and papist says,
Berengarius, again renounced his doctrine. But how true this
is, we leave to God., "It is evident," says the author to the
<i>Introduction,</i> "that he maintained this doctrine for
fortyfour years, and filled Germany and France with it; from
which it can be inferred, that the same, even as it had itself
proceeded from previously existing writings, in its turn left
many disciples." <i>Imtrod., page</i> 48, col. 2, <i>and 49,
col. 1.</i></p>

<p>But though the doctrine of Bruno and Berengarius commenced
in the year <i>1035</i> and ended about A. D. 1079, as far as
these two persons are concerned (for, otherwise it is a
doctrine that began with Christ and will end only at the end of
the world), yet, said doctrine displayed its greatest power,
through these two persons, and encountered the most opposition,
about the year 1060, as appears from the account of Jac.
Mehrning and H. Montanus, who unanimously state the
following:, "A. D. 1060, Bruno, Bishop of Angiers, and Berengarius, his
deacon, rejected infant baptism." See <i>Guitmundus, Bishop of
Avers, and Duramdus, Bishop of Luyck.</i> These are their
words, "Bruno, Bishop of Angiers, and Berengarius of Tours,
annul the baptism of infants as much as is in their power; so
that they, discarding infant baptism, counsel men to plunge
themselves without fear into the deep abyss of all manner of
wickedness; saying that they are not to be baptized, until they
attain to years of understanding." Jac. <i>Mehrn., Bapt. Hist.,
pp. 591, 592. H. Montan. Nietighd., pages</i> 82, 83, from
<i>Guitm. in Principio Dialogi de Veritate Eucharistiae.
Durand, in Epist. contra Brumom and Berengarium;</i> also,
<i>Baron., A. D. 1035, mum.</i> 1; also, <i>Alan., lib. 1,
contra Hceretic, sui Temporis, pages</i> 103, 104, 105.</p>

<p>It seems that the matter of the accusation of these two men,
Bruno and Berenearius, rose to</p>

</div><div id="264"> 

<p>such a pitch, that they were subjected to an examination, in
order to ascertain the grounds of their faith, and to judge
them accordingly.</p>

<p>The author of an anonymous manuscript found in the library
of Baron Caraw. de Clepton., writes of the examination of said
Bruno, saying, that he himself was present when Bruno, the
defender of Berengarius, was interrogated in regard to his
faith; and that they both, Bruno and Berengarius, said that
infant baptism was not necessary to salvation. See also 1.
<i>Mehrn., Bapt. Hist., page</i> 685.</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 1068.-D. Vicecomes quotes from a
manuscript book of ceremonies, by Beroldus, which, treating of
certain religious ceremonies of that time, makes mention also
of baptism, and how it was administered then among those of
whom he writes. But, to come to the matter; when, noting from
this book, the first address made to novices (whom he terms
children, according to the manner of Christ, who also called
His disciples children, John 21:5), he says, that, the door
having been opened, they were thus addressed, "Enter, ye
children, into the house of God; hear your father (the teacher)
teach you the way of wisdom." <i>Bapt. Hist., page</i> 592,
mum. <i>3, hicecom., lib.</i> 2, <i>cap. 43.</i></p>

<p>He then relates what occurred when the doors were closed,
and the novices were in the assembly; how the bishop or teacher
then delivered to them the symbol, that is, the creed; and how
he presented or repeated to them the faith, according to the
language of the gospels, and then said, "Hear the faith: I
believe on God the Father." <i>Above page, hicecom., lib.</i>
3, <i>cap. 14.</i></p>

<p>The other circumstances related there we pass by; it sufces
us to have seen that then the novices (before they were
baptized), were taught the way of wisdom; that the faith was
presented to them, and that they were instructed in it, which
are things that cannot be done with infants, and, hence, prove,
that in the church where this practice was observed, infant
baptism was unknown, or, at least, was not practiced there.</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 1076, or right after Beroldus, one Ado,
surnamed Trevirensis, a teacher of that time, is introduced; of
whom it is stated that, in administering baptism, he admonished
the candidates not only in the knowledge of the faith, but also
to the practice of it, that is, to fast, to humble themselves.
Of these matters an instance is given, which is related as
follows in <i>Bapt. Hist., page</i> 593, mum. 4, "When a certain
woman, called Syranna, became a believer, he (Ado) thanked God
for her, imposed a fast upon her, and fold her how she should
humble herself, and having taus instructed her, together with
her son, he baptized them." <i>Vicecom., lib. 3, cap.
12.</i></p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1090.-At this time lived and wrote, it is
stated, the teacher and historian Juo, surnamed Oarnotensis,
from the place Carnuto, where he resided. According to the
testimony of ancient writers, he opposed common popery in
various points of doctrine, teaching in such a manner
concerning the only Mediator, Christ Jesus, church service,
against monachism; against the difference of meats, and of the
Supper, that the papists took offense thereat, and considered
him a seditious and schismatical person.</p>

<p>NOTE.-Juo Carnotensis makes some mention also of the origin
of infant baptism, how the same arose in the Roman church."The
church," he says,"having now been sufficiently spread and
gathered among the Gentiles; in order that her children, who
departed this life before they had attained to the years of
understanding, might not remain strangers to the communion of
Christ, it was desired to provide them with this medicine of
salvation (with baptism); and thus they were baptized with the
sacrament of faith." <i>Bapt. Hist., pp.</i> 587, 588, from
<i>Cent. Magd. XI., cap.</i> 6.</p>

<p>However, it is not our purpose to write here of all these
things; partly, because this, through default of the authors,
cannot be done circumstantially; and partly, because we only
intended to write something of baptism, with regard to which we
will also adduce the testimony of Juo. What he may have written
concerning this subject, in other respects, while he was yet
unenlightened, we pass by, and will only speak of that which
he, when he had become enlightened and had attained to
knowledge, wrote salutarily and correctly on this article.</p>

<p><i>Bapt. Hist., page</i> 588, mum. 6, Juo writes, "To the
hearers of the new life, the apostolic creed is delivered,
which they publicly confess before baptism." Ex <i>Meginh. de
Fide.</i></p>

<p><i>Page</i> 590, mum. <i>14,</i> the following is quoted
from Juo, "During the answers to the threefold question, the
catechumen (that is, the novice who has learned the faith) is
washed from the filth of the old wickedness (namely, through
baptism), and puts on the new man."</p>

<p>Page 594, mum. 7. D. Vicecomes (lib. 1, cap. 25) quotes the
following account from Juo, "Then those who were to be baptized
on the holy Easter Sabbath, were led, in the fourth week of the
forty days' fast, and on the fourth day of said week, to the
church (or, to the assembly), to be taught and examined in the
catechism (that is, in the instruction of the faith), and
further instructed, how they should fight against spiritual
wickedness; yet, their baptism was deferred till holy Easter
Sabbath." Serm. de Saeram. Initiat.</p>

<p>Same page as above."On that day, those who desire baptism,
come to the church (or, to the assembly), that they may be
received into the order (or number) of the catechumens, and may
throw off, by holy prayers, the yoke of the devil." <i>D.</i>
Vicecom,., lib. 2, cap. 30.</p>

<p>Page 595.-Juo (from August.) adduces these words, "At the
water of baptism, before we baptized you, we asked: Do you
believe on God the Almighty?" <i>D.</i> hicecom., lib. 4, cap.
7.</p>

<p>From these five passages of Juo it is evident, virtually as
well as from the circumstances, that he treats of no other
baptism than that which is ac</p>

</div><div id="265"> 

<p>companied with instruction, faith, confession of the faith,
and observance of the same; in short, that he speaks of a
baptism which, as appears from his own words, cannot well, yea,
not at all, be reconciled with infant baptism. For, in the
first passage he makes mention of a creed, which the candidates
had to confess publicly before baptism. In the second passage
he speaks of the answers which the catechumens gave to the
threefold question put to them before baptism; and that they
were then washed from the filth of the old wickedness, and did
put on the new man. In the third passage he relates how those
who were to be baptized on the holy Easter Sabbath, were first
examined in the faith, and further instructed, in the fourth
week of the forty days' fast. In the fourth passage he says
that on that day those who desired baptism, came to the church
or assembly, to be received into the order or number of the
catechumens, and to pray. In the fifth passage he mentions what
the candidates were asked at the water of baptism, namely,
whether they believed on God, the Almighty.</p>

<p>All these are things that pertain only to the adult and
intelligent, and cannot be comprehended, much less practiced by
infants.</p>

<p>We will conclude this with the account of P. J. Twisck, who,
besides what he has mentioned concerning baptism, briefly
notices several other articles which Juo taught contrary to the
common belief of the Roman church. He writes, "Juo, Bishop of
Carnuto, zealously taught of Christ, the only Mediator, of
church service, against monachism, against the difference of
meats, and of the Supper." <i>Chron., page 416, col. 2,</i>
from <i>Catal. Test., Tom. 2, fol. 346.</i></p>

<p>It is very probable, since we have never heard of his having
recanted, that this Juo, who began his doctrine, or, at least,
maintained it the most vigorously, in the year 1090, continued
therein to the end, and thus concluded the eleventh century
with it. Hence, we will close here, and see which pious
witnesses of Jesus Christ suffered at this time.</p>

 
 <h1>AN ACCOUNT OF THOSE WHO SUFFERED IN THE ELEVENTH CENTURY: SUMMARY OF THE MARTYRS IN THE ELEVENTH CENTURY </h1>

<p>[A simile of the moonlight and the stars, which shine most
in the darkest nights, forms the beginning of our account,
representing the condition of this time:</p>

<p>Fourteen persons, the chiefest of whom was called Stephen,
are burned as heretics, for the testimony of the truth, by the
papists, A. D. 1022, at Orleans in France.</p>

<p>Then follows a note concerning the accusations brought
against the afore-mentioned persons; and also, further
observations touching said fourteen martyrs, .according to the
accounts of various papistic and other writers, noted in the
<i>Second Book of the Persecutions, fol. 437, col. 3,
4.</i></p>

<p>The great craftiness of the papist, Gretserus, in altering
the titles of the books of the ancients, to the detriment of
the belief of the Waldenses; some of their martyrs called
firstlings, which is circumstantially noticed in the
margin.</p>

<p>Some pious Christians at Goslar, called Manicheans by the
papists, hanged for the confession of the evangelical truth, A.
D. <i>1052.</i> It is shown, 1. that they claimed to lead a
true apostolical life: <i>2.</i> that they would neither lie
nor swear; <i>3.</i> that they maintained that the sacrament of
the altar was nothing but bread; <i>4.</i> that they denied
baptism, that is, infant baptism. One papist, as Thuan against
Radulph, etc., opposed to each other in their testimony against
these people.</p>

<p>Henry and Alfuard, two good Christians, the former beheaded
in the uttermost parts of Sweden, the latter slain among the
Normans, for defending the evangelical doctrine, A. D.
<i>1067.</i></p>

<p>Marginal notice explanatory of their belief.</p>

<p>Bruno, Bishop of Angiers, and Berengarius, his deacon, are
condemned in different councils, through the Roman pope, on
account of their views against infant baptism,
transubstantiation, the mass, etc.; the first time, A. D.
<i>1050,</i> both together; the second time, A. D. <i>1079,</i>
Berengarius alone. The inconstancy of Berengarius in some
matters is shown, but also his sorrow for it, and his
perseverance to the end, on account of which he is accounted
among the martyrs.</p>

<p>Many of the followers of Berengarius, called Berengarians,
are anathematized by order of the pope, at Piacenza, in Italy,
A. D. <i>1095,</i> and afterwards persecuted unto death, about
A. D. 1100. Conclusion.]</p>

<p>Even as the shining moon and the glittering stars give the
most light, and adorn the blue expanse of heaven the most
gloriously, in the darkest nights, so it was also after A. D.
1000, as regards spiritual matters, which concern the honor of
God and the salvation of the souls of men. For, about the year
1000, as well as many years before and after but particularly
then, the world lay sunken, as it were, in an arctic,
six-month's night, through the thick, and palpable darkness,
which had arisen, with heavy vapors of superstitions, from the
Roman pit. Yet, notwithstanding the state of the times, some
undefiled persons, as bright heavenly signs, and stars, began
to shine forth the more, and to let their light of evangelical
truth illumine the dark nights of papal error. Yea, some, like
the polar star, served as a sign to sail by; I mean, to
accomplish safely and in a godly manner, through the turbulent
waves of perverted worship and human inventions, the journey to
the heavenly fatherland. Others, like the morningstar, or the
lovely, blushing Aurora, announced the approaching day;</p>

</div><div id="266"> 

<p>we mean, they pointed to the true day of the Christian and
evangelical worship of God, and revealed it, as much as they
were able, to those who sat in the darkness of error.</p>

<p>We will no longer speak by simile; what we mean is this:
That there were men in those dark times, who maintained God's
truth, in various points, according to the needs of that time,
and bore witness to and sealed it not only with the mouth, but
with the deed, yea, with their blood and death.</p>

<h2>FOURTEEN PERSONS, THE CHIEFEST OF WHOM WAS CALLED STEPHEN, BURNED AS HERETICS FOR THE TESTIMONY OF THE TRUTH, BY THE PAPISTS, AT ORLEANS, IN FRANCE, NEAR THE CLOSE OF A. D. 1022</h2> 

<p>A. D. 1022, near the close of the year, it seems, or, at the
latest, A. D. 1023, there were apprehended and publicly burned,
in France, in the presence of King Robert, on account of heresy
(socalled by the papists), certain fourteen persons, some of
whom were common people, while the others were of noble
descent,* and of whom the chiefest was called Stephen. They
were accused of having spoken evil of God, and the holy
sacraments, that is, of holy baptism (namely, infant baptism,
for this was what the papists generally practiced, and
concerning which disputes were of frequent occurrence), and of
the body and blood of the Lord (that is, the sacrament of the
altar, which the Romanists were wont to call the body and blood
of the Lord); also of marriage, etc., "This appears," says the writer,"to have been the first
execution (that is, by burning), of persons accused of heresy
in the Roman church." Continuing he says, "In an old book we
find an account, that this heresy was brought into this country
from across the sea, namely, from Bulgaria, and that thence it
was spread into other provinces, where it subsequently was much
in vogue, principally in Languedoc, around Toulouse, and in
Gascony."</p>

<p>He also states there, that the people who maintained this
doctrine, were called Albigeois, and also Bulgarians, because
they came from Bulgaria. hig<i>nierzi Hist. Eccl., A. D.</i>
1022, <i>ex Glabro and Massonio in Annalibus, and alio Autiquo
Authore,</i> compared with <i>Abr. Mell., fol.</i> 381, col. 2,
and fol. 436, col. 1.</p>

<p>Touching the accusations which were brought against the
afore-mentioned fourteen persons, they were, as is related:
That they had spoken against the article concerning God;
.against the holy sacraments, both baptism and the sacrament of
the altar; against marriage, etc.; on account of which there
was inflicted upon them the very cruel, dreadful, and miserable
death by fire.</p>

<p>But what they believed and maintained with regard to said
points, according to the account of impartial writers, shall be
amply explained after-</p>

<br /><cite>* Laymen and nobles. etc. the papist writer
nays. wards, in the Confession of the Albigenses and Waldenses,
who held the same belief; since said persons are held to have
been the firstlings of those who maintained the doctrine of the
Albigenses (though long before their general rising). <i>See
the authors cited above, especially the last one.</i></cite> 

<p>Then it will be seen, that they believed and spoke nothing
but what we .at the present day believe and speak; also, as
regards baptism, that they baptized believers, and opposed
infant baptism; and, touching the Supper, that they observed it
according to the institution of Christ, but rejected the mass
and transubstantiation; again, that they denied revenge, the
swearing of oaths, auricular confession, the invocation of
departed saints, purgatory, etc.</p>

<h2>FURTHER OBSERVATIONS TOUCHING SAID FOURTEEN MARTYRS, ACCORDING TO THE ACCOUNTS OF VARIOUS PAPISTIC AND OTHER WRITERS, NOTED IN A. MELLINUS' SECOND BOOK OF THE PERSECUTIONS, FOL. 437, COL. 3, 4</h2> 
<p>"Robert Altisidorensis states of said martyrs of Orleans,
that they were of the best or chiefest laymen of Orleans, and
that for this reason a council was convened there against them,
in which they were unanimously condemned and sentenced, as
heretics, to the fire; and that they were thus burned
alive."</p>

<p>This testimony is confirmed by Johannes, a monk of Floriax,
who gives a somewhat fuller account of the matter, in his
letter to Oliva or Olivarius, abbot of the church of Ansona,
saying, "Meanwhile I will inform thee of this heresy (thus he
calls the true faith of these people), which was on Innocent's
day, in the city of Orleans; for it is the truth if thou hast
heard ought of it. King Robert caused fourteen of the best or
most nobly born laymen of said city to be burned alive; who,
(Oh, what a great falsehood!) abominable before God, and hated
by heaven and earth, utterly denied the grace of holy baptism
(he means infant baptism, for thereupon the grace of salvation
was promised to children, which these men denied) as well as
the consecration of the body and blood of the Lord, and denied
that one could thereby obtain remission of sins, after he had
committed a crime." <i>Masson Annal. Franc., lib. 3,</i> in
<i>Hugo and Robert.</i></p>

<p>Glaber Radulphus (in <i>Hist. Gall., lib. 3, cap. 8),</i>
gives a much more circumstantial account of these martyrs,
relating not only how this (so-called) heresy was discovered,
but also how it was brought to Orleans and propagated; which
we, in order to be brief, pass by.</p>

<p>He mentions, among others, two of these people by name,
namely, Heribert and Lisoius, who were greatly esteemed and
beloved by the king and the lords of the realm, as long as
their case was not known. Glaber further relates how they were
discovered. They sought, at Rouen, to bring a certain Driest
over to their belief , through some whom</p>

</div><div id="267"> 

<p>they probably had expressly sent to this priest, to expound
to him the mystery of their doctrine, and who endeavored to
persuade him by saying that very soon all the people would fall
over to them.</p>

<p>When the priest understood this, he immediately went to
Richard, the Count of that city, and told him the whole matter.
The latter instantly sent letters by express messengers to the
king, informing him of this secret pestilence (as he calls the
true faith). King Robert, much grieved at this, without delay
convened a council of many bishops, abbots, and other religious
persons (thus he calls this blood-thirsty council), and,
through them, caused very strict investigations to be made,
both as to the authors and adherents of said heresy. When
inquiry was made among the laymen, as to what the belief and
faith of each several one was, the aforesaid Heribert and
Lisoius immediately discovered themselves, that they differed
in their belief from the Roman church, and afterwards others
also declared that they adhered to Heribert and Lisoius, and
that they could in no wise be drawn away from their faith.
Being interrogated more closely, whence and by whom this presumption had originated,
they gave this answer, "This is what you have long called a
sect, which you now, though late, recognize. But we have waited
for a long time, that you as well as all others, of whatever
law or order, might come over and unite with this sect; which,
we also believe, will yet take place."</p>
<p>They then immediately presented their belief, undoubtedly
after the manner of the Albigenses and Waldenses, as shall be
shown hereafter.</p>

<p>When the king and all those present saw that they could not
be moved from their belief, he commanded that a very large fire
of wood should be kindled not far from the city, in order that
perhaps, terrified thereby, they might desist from their
belief. But when they were about to be led out to the fire,
they cried aloud, saying, that they greatly longed for it, and
gave themselves into the hands of those who were to draw them
to the fire. They, thirteen in number, were committed to the
flames, and all who afterwards were found to be their
adherents, were put to death by the same means.</p>

   
</div><div id="268"> 

<p>pAgain, in the records of the parish church
of Orleans, called St. Maximus' church, the time is specified,
when this took place. It occurred, it is there stated, publicly
at Orleans, A. D. 1022, in the twenty-eighth year of
King Robert, on the fifth induction, when the arch-heretic
Stephen and his companions were condemned at Orleans, and
burnt.</p>

<p>The above citations are taken from the writings of papists;
hence, the reader is admonished, to judge charitably with
regard to the accusations which these inveterate adversaries
have so bitterly cast up against these pious witnesses of Jesus
Christ.</p>

<p>NOTE.-We have related above, that said fourteen martyrs have
been considered, by the ancients, as the firstlings of the
Waldenses; but the papists called them heretics. However, this
is not to be wondered at; since, in the course of time, they
adopted the practice of calling heretics and the Waldenses by
the same name. Of this we will present a few examples. The
priest Reinerius wrote a book, which he called, <i>Summa contra
Hareticos,</i> that is,"A Summary against the Heretics." To
this book the Jesuits subsequently gave the title <i>Contra
Waldenses,</i> or,"Against the Waldenses;" as if all the errors
opposed in said book, were peculiar to the Waldenses, which is
as untrue as falsehood itself. Compare <i>Reinerius' book</i>
with <i>A. M., 2d book, fol. 437, col. 4.</i></p>

<p>Everhard Berthuniensis gave to his book the title,
<i>Antiheretism,</i> which is equivalent to saying <i>Against
Heretics,</i> etc.; but the Jesuit Gretserus, when he published
said book, called it, <i>Everhardus contra Waldensen;</i> as if
Everhard had written only against the Waldenses,
notwithstanding only the smallest part militates against them.
Nevertheless, it was sought, by this title, to accuse the poor
Waldenses of all the heresies mentioned in that book.</p>

<p>Afterwards, one Ermegard wrote a book against the grossly
erring spirits who maintained in their confession, that the
world and all visible things were not created by God, but (Oh,
what an awful falsehood!) by Satan; which belief is imputed, by
most of the ancient writers, to the Manicheans; yet, the last
mentioned falsifier, namely, Gretserus, has not hesitated to
head such a page of said book, <i>Ermegard against the
Waldenses;</i> though the author specially refuted the
Manicheans, with whom the Waldenses had nothing in common. See
the above-mentioned authors and books, and also the comments of
Balthasar Lydius on the disputations of said persons. Hence it
follows from the foregoing, that it need not seem strange to
the reader, that the papists called the orthodox Waldenses, or,
at least, such as opposed the Roman doctrine, as well as the
priests and monks, by the odious name of Manicheans or
heretics, as was frequently the case, and shall presently be
shown, with regard to the good martyrs, who, through the malice
of the nanists. were hanved at Goslar.</p>

<h2>SOME PIOUS CHRISTIANS, CALLED MANICHEANS AND HERETICS BY THE PAPISTS, HANGED FOR THE CONFESSION OF THE EVANGELICAL TRUTH, AT GOSLAR, A. D. 1052</h2> 

<p>It grieves us to our very soul, that in regard to the
testimonies of the holy martyrs, we have to resort to the
writings of papists, their most inveterate enemies, as well as
to other writers who did not hold the same faith with us, and
who, consequently, made the faithful records of the pious
witnesses of Jesus our Saviour incline to their opinion, and
explained' them according to their own views. This mischief has
met us before, and now again falls to our lot; still, we hope
that the intelligent and attentive reader will distinguish
light from darkness, and judge impartially, and as a
Christian.</p>

<p>Herman Contractus, Count of Veringen, writes at the close of
his life, hardly one or two years before his death, of certain
persons at Goslar, who were accused by their adversaries, the
Romanists, of being Manicheans; for at that time no other or
better name was known for the true Christians, who were opposed
to the Roman church, notwithstanding they had nothing at all in
common with the Manicheans; and thus this Herman Contractus, a
strong maintainer of the papal religion, also called these
persons, after Roman fashion, Manicheans, saying, "The Emperor
Henry III (some say II), A. D. <i>1052,</i> celebrated, at
Goslar, the Lord's birthday, and there caused some heretics
(thus he calls the true Christians), who, among other perverse
opinions according to the sect of the Manicheans, abhor the
eating of all kinds of meat (which he unjustly imputes to these
people, as shall be shown), and who were condemned, by common
consent (of the bishops or lords of the realm), as heretics; to
be hanged on the gallows, in order that the contagion should
not spread further and contaminate many others. <i>Heron..
Contr. Chron., A. D. 1052.</i></p>

<p>But they cared not so much (A. Mellinus writers), about the
eating of flesh, as about many other points of doctrine, which
Herman Contractus passes over silently; namely, such as Radulph
Ardens makes mention of, relating that at the close of said
century there were some (so-called) Manicheans at Aix la
Chapelle in France. He there says (Homil. <i>Dominical 8,
post</i> Trinit.), "Such are at the present day the Manichean
heretics, who have polluted our country of Aix la Chapelle with
their heresy; who pretend to lead a true apostolical life,
saying that they do not lie; that they do not swear, and, under
the cloak of abstemiousness, they reject the eating of flesh.
They also maintain that the sacrament of the altar is nothing
but mere bread; they deny baptism (namely, infant baptism, for
this was the point in question) and say that none can be saved
but those who are baptized by their hands."</p>

<p>It is true that said papistic writer charges them with
several other thins as belonging to their doc-</p>

</div><div id="269"> 

<p>trines, of which we deem it unnecessary to speak here, since
Mellinus to whom we referred above, answers all these for us,
saying <i>(2d book, fol.</i> 437), "All these errors, except
that of baptism and of the mass or transubstantiation (that is,
against the mass and transubstantiation), are unjustly imputed
to them by these papistic authors, as Thuan, writing of the
Waldenses, himself confesses <i>(Hist. sui temp. A. D.
1550).</i> He then quotes from Thua.n the confession of these
people, in which no errors at all, much less Manichean
heresies, are found; but which contains chiefly such things as
are publicly taught by us, at the present day, and maintained
with the power and authority of the holy and divine Scriptures,
against the superstitions of popery.</p>

<p>Having quoted the confession of these people, from Thuan,
Mellinus says, "This is certainly a square and unfeigned
confession of Thuan, which alone is sufficient to refute all
the preceding slanders (namely, which had been flung against
the holy martyrs)."</p>

<p>Thus, even according to the testimony of the papist Thuan,
and the statement of the Calvinistic Mellinus, the
above-mentioned martyrs were not guilty of Manichean errors;
they only spoke against the Roman church, principally in the
matter of baptism (that is, infant baptism) and in regard to
the mass or transubstantiation; hence, they may be reckoned
among the true witnesses of Jesus Christ, who testified to
their living faith, not only with the mouth, but also with
their blood, yea, with their death; and whom the Lord will
hereafter, in the resurrection of the just, reward and crown,
according to His promise. Rev. <i>2:10.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-We here place one papist against -another; Thuan
against Radulph. In the meantime, we are induced to receive the
best testimony concerning said martyrs from these two differing
writers; since they both had no other purpose than to speak to
the detriment of said people. Thuan says, "Their points of
doctrine are said to be these: That the Roman church has
forsaken the true Christian faith; that she is the Babylonian
whore, and the dead tree which Christ cursed and commanded to
be cut down; that therefore no obedience is to be rendered to
the pope and the bishops who consent to his errors; that
Monachism is a veritable sink of all the corruption of the
church, and an infernal pool; that all monastic vows are vain
and unavailing, and tend only to lasciviousness; that the
orders of the priesthood are marks of the great beast, of which
mention is made in the Apocalypse; that purgatory, the mass,
church consecration, the worship of saints, masses for the
dead, etc., are genuine inventions and institutions of Satan.
These, says the writer, are the principal and certain articles
of their doctrine. The others, concerning marriage (that they
deemed it evil), the resurrection (that they denied it), the
state of the soul after death (that they spoke improperly of
it), and concerning meats (that they rejected all eating of
flesh), are unjustly imputed to them. <i>Thuan in. Hist. de
Waldens. Temp., A. D. 1550,</i> compared with <i>A. Mell., 2d
book, fol.</i> 437, <i>col. 3.</i></p>

<p>We have shown this the more circumstantially, to demonstrate
the innocence of said martyrs, and that their doctrinal points
were not Manichean heresies, but strictures upon the Roman
church, which stirred up the animosity of the papists, so that,
as it seems, they vented the spleen of their manifold
accusations against said people.</p>

<h2>HENRY AND ALFUARD, TWO PIOUS CHRISTIANS, THE ONE BEHEADED IN THE UTTERMOST PARTS OF SWEDEN, THE OTHER SLAIN AMONG THE NORMANS, FOR DEFENDING THE EVANGELICAL DOCTRINE, A. D. 1067</h2> 

<p>A. <i>D.</i> 1067, there was a God-fearing man, whose name
was Henry, and whom the Romish historian calls a stranger,
perhaps because he was obliged to live secretly or as a
stranger among the Romanists. It is stated of him, that he
preached the Gospel of Christ in the uttermost parts of Sweden,
and that he was apprehended for this cause and beheaded for the
name of Christ.</p>

<p>Another pious Christian, named Alfuard, after living for a
long time secretly, yet leading a pure and holy life among the
Normans, could not thus even in secret remain Christ's own.
Because he sought to protect, or to do good to, his enemy, he
was slain by his friends, or those at least who ought to have
been his friends. <i>Adam., in Histor. Sued.,</i> 1067,
compared with <i>Abr. Mell., fol.</i> 384, col. 3.</p>

<p>The records of these two martyrs, Henry and Alfuard, are
very brief, because, the writer, as he states, would neither
add to, nor take from, the truth of the matter, but wished to
record it just as it was stated to him, which is an evidence of
the verity of said matter. Therefore we also did not feel at
liberty to extend the relation of the same, or to add, for
amplification, the opinions of other authors. However, this is
not necessary, since, in said account, all that is needful for
the cognizance of said martyrs, is briefly, yet sufficiently,
shown. For, of Henry it is stated that he preached the Gospel
of Christ (not papal traditions), and that he was apprehended
on this account. Of Alfuard the author writes, that he lived
for a long time secretly, though leading a pure and holy life,
among the Normans; also, that he could no longer secretly
remain Christ's own; understand, not the pope's, or the
so-called mother, the Roman church's own, but Christ's own.
More might be added, but for the well-disposed we deem this
sufficient.</p>

</div><div id="270"> 

<h2>BRUNO, BISHOP OF ANGIERS, AND BERENGARIUS, HIS DEACON, CONDEMNED IN SEVERAL COUNCILS, THROUGH THE ROMAN POPE, ON ACCOUNT OF THEIR VIEWS AGAINST INFANT BAPTISM, TRANSUBSTANTIATION, THE MASS, ETC.; THE FIRST TIME, A. D. 1059, THE LAST TIME, A. D. 1079</h2> 

<p>In our account of holy baptism for the year 1060, we made
mention of Bruno, Bishop of Angiers, and Berengarius, his
deacon, and showed, according to the accounts of different
writers, that they, in opposition to the common belief of
popery, denied infant baptism and transubstantiation, with all
that pertains to it, as has been shown in said place.</p>

<p>Of Bruno we find no further account, only that when he was
examined he answered as has been related; and that his
doctrine, together with that of Berengarius, was condemned by
Pope Leo IX, in two different synods, the one of which was held
at Rome, and the other at Versailles. But what further happened
to him after said papal condemnation, is not mentioned by the
ancients, or, at least, has not come to our knowledge.</p>

<p>But of Berengarius it is stated, that besides the
afore-mentioned two condemnations by Pope Leo the Ninth, which
he suffered together with Bruno, he was subjected to three
examinations and as many condemnations, in three successive
synods, once at Tours, and twice at Rome. But to our sincere
regret we cannot omit mentioning that in the last three
examinations, either from fear of death or for some other
reason, he did not acquit himself altogether manfully or in a
Christianlike manner; inasmuch as in each examination, if what
the ancients have written concerning it is correct, he denied
his belief before men; though after each denial, upon regaining
his freedom, constrained in his conscience, he reavowed the
same.</p>

<p>His denial from whatever cause it may have proceeded, was a
fault of such magnitude that it could not be tolerated even in
an ordinary Christian, much less in a martyr, unless it be that
the name of a good Christian or martyr be withheld from him.
Howeverl' when, against this, there is taken into
consideration, the heartfelt sorrow and grief which he
manifested every time, and that he again taught the people as
before, and this, as is stated by many, to the end of his life;
the name of a Christian, yea, even of a martyr (though in
weakness), on account of the manifold troubles he met with
because of his belief, may still be accorded him.</p>

<p>The holy apostle Peter, after his threefold denial of
Christ, though this was a dreadful sin, was not rejected by
Christ, when he manifested sincere repentance; seeing the Lord
afterwards commanded him to feed His lambs and sheep, yea,
foretold him that he should be bound, for His name's sake, and
glorify God by his death, that is, that he should have to die
as a martyr, which also happened to him in the reign of Nero,
as is shown in the first century, A. D. 69. Berengarius lived
to the age of about ninety years, according to the papist
Baronius, who says that he remained separated from the Roman
church,* as a schismatic, to the end of his life, though
Bellarmine thinks differently, which we leave to him, till
better proof than the opinion of a monk of Malmsbury, from
whom, it seems, Bellarmine has derived his opinion, can be
furnished. Compare <i>Bellarm., in Chron., A. D.</i> 1058, with
Hist. Angl., lib. 3, touching the opinion of the monk of
Malmsbury.</p>

<p>As regards the time of his death, it is fixed A. D. 1088, on
the day of Epiphany. The last words which he is said to have
uttered, are adduced by a certain bishop of Cenomana, called
Hildebert, in the third book of the English History, where he
says that Berengarius, sighing deeply, said, "Today, on this day
of Epiphany, my Lord Jesus Christ will appear to me, as I hope
unto glory, because of my repentance, or, as I fear, on account
of other things unto punishment." <i>A. Mell., fol.</i> 395,
col. 1.</p>

<p>These words, it seems, are misinterpreted by the monk of
Malmsbury, as though Berengarius, in speaking of his penitence
and good hope, had intended to imply that, in the aforesaid
articles, he had returned to the Roman church; and that, in
mentioning his fear of punishment, he had reference to the
punishment of which he might have stood in fear, because of the
views which he had maintained against the pope and the Roman
church. But, besides that we see no clear proof in the opinion
of said monk, this utterance of Berengarius can very fitly be
taken in another and better sense, namely, thus: That
Berengarius, When he spoke of his repentance and good hope in
the appearance of Jesus Christ, was confident, that the
merciful Jesus, his beloved Saviour, because he had now
repented, and was sorry for his denial, to which the papists
had compelled him, would graciously forgive his sins; since the
Lord, when His disciple Peter had fallen into a like, or still
greater sin of denial, forgave him when he repented of it. Yet,
on the other hand, that he was not entirely without fear,
because he had committed said denial against his conscience,
and because the Lord is as just as He is merciful, especially
in punishing sins that are committed against the conscience, or
with premeditation.</p>

<p>Nevertheless, from his words (if they have been quoted
correctly), it is evident, that his hope was greater than his
fear, since he speaks first of the former, as well as of his
sorrow or repentance, yea, of the: glory of the blessed; for
what else could he mean to indicate, when he said, "Today, on
this day . . . my Lord Jesus Christ will appear to me, as I
hope, unto glory, because of my repentance"? As to the words
that follow, they seem to have been added from Christian
carefulness and humility, since no living man could stand
before</p>

<br /><cite>* A. Mell., fol. 395, ex Baron., in Chron.
Eccl., 1088. Art. 15, 20, 21.</cite> 

</div><div id="271"> 

<p>the justice of God, if He were not merciful; much less one
who had notably sinned against His most divine and holy
Majesty; which agrees with job 9:2; Ps. 130:3; and 143:2.</p>

<p>In the meantime, men had very different views respecting the
decease of Berengarius; for some, namely those who were rigid
Romanists, and papists, had, it seems, an evil opinion of him;
hence they knew nothing:good to say of him, as appears from the
account of Papirius Massonius, who, in his history of France,
for the year 1088, says, "In this year, on the day of Epiphany .
. . that corrupt arch-heretic, Berengarius, who so often
deceived the (Roman) church by feigning to repent of his views,
departed this life." <i>Annal. Franc.,</i> lib. 3.</p>

<p>But others, who were his good friends, had a better opinion
of him. Among these, the abovementioned Hildebert was not the
least; he, as some have observed, composed a very beautiful
epitaph upon his death, the last words of which were as
follows, "He (Berengarius) was truly a wise man, and, in every
respect, perfectly blessed; who enriched heaven with his soul,
and the earth with his body. God grant, that after my death I
may live and rest with him, and that my lot or inheritance may
be no better than his." See the above cited book, compared with
<i>Abr. Mell., fol.</i> 395, col. 1, 2.</p>

<p>We will close here, and commit his cause to God. Meanwhile,
the church of God, or, at least, the little flock of believers,
sustained a great loss in his death. Hence, we may say, as was
lamentingly said by one of old, "The day when Bererngarius died
was an evil day." <i>Sam. heltius., Geslacht-register, page
128.</i></p>

<h2>MANY OF THE FOLLOWERS OF BERENGARIUS, CALLED BERENGARIANS, ANATHEMATIZED BY ORDER OF THE POPE, AT PIACENZA., IN ITALY, A. D. 1095, AND AFTERWARDS PERSECUTED UNTO DEATH, ABOUT A. D. 1100</h2> 

<p>It is stated that after the death of Berengarius, his
doctrine (spoken of above) in reference to baptism and the
Supper, against the belief of the Roman church, gained much
favor among his followers, who were called Berengarians; so
that England, France, Italy, Spain, Germany, and even part of
the Netherlands, became filled with it. A certain writer
says, "They did not adhere to Berengarius as to a reed which is
swayed by the wind; and their faith did not rest on men,
however pious or godly these might have been, but upon the pure
Word of God, which abides forever."</p>

<p>Hence, Pope Urban II, A. D. 1095, by constraint as it were,
convened a great council against them, in the city of Piacenza,
in Italy; to which there came many bishops from Italy,
Burgundy, France, Germany, Bavaria, and other countries, so
that there was no church large enough to hold all the people,
but they had to meet without the city, in an open field.</p>

<p>Bertoleus Constantiensis says, that in this council a canon
or rule was established, by which the views of Berengarius,
which were called a heresy, were again, as had repeatedly been
done previously, anathematized or cursed, but the views of the
Roman church, confirmed as a precious matter. Compare
<i>Bertho. Constant., in Chron., A. D.</i> 1095. <i>Baron.
Annal., T.</i> 11, with A. <i>Mell., fol</i>. 395, col. 2,
3.</p>

<p>Hence it came, that a great persecution and dire distress
arose, particularly about A. D. 1100, over said Berengarians,
so that, at first, some were exiled here and there, f rom the
Roman dominion, some expelled, and some were punished with
death, yea, with death by fire, as shall appear more fully in
the account of the martyrs in the following century. In the
meantime, see A. <i>M. fol.</i> 395. col. 3, from <i>Thuan.,
Pref.</i> Also, <i>in Hist. Henr.</i> 4.</p><br />

<br />

<h1>AN ACCOUNT OF THE HOLY BAPTISM IN THE TWELFTH CENTURY: SUMMARY OF BAPTISM IN THE TWELFTH CENTURY</h1>

<p>[The last year of the preceding century, namely, A. D. 1100,
is introduced here by way of introduction to the following
century; in which it is shown, that in and shortly after that
time there existed the Waldenses and Albigeois, of whom we
shall speak more fully about the middle of this century.</p>

<p>For the year 1105, some persons are introduced, who opposed
infant baptism, transubstantiation, and the Roman church; also
some, for the year 1119, who condemned the mass.</p>

<p>Certain people, who held the same views as were afterwards
held in the time of Peter Waldus. Their views against the pope,
infant baptism, the mass, image worship, secular power of the
church, persecution, etc.</p>

<p>Rupert Tuiciensis gives an excellent exposition of the
baptism of the ancients; he teaches, that, in order to be
baptized, one must first believe, and confess the faith; that
many who are baptized with water, are not renewed inwardly,
because their heart is not right, though they make confession
with the mouth; that the truly baptized, from servants of sin,
become children of God; that the Word of God was preached to
the Christian youth throughout the whole year to prepare them
for baptism. What a certain pedobaptist, D. J. V., has written
on said words of Rupertus; what P. J. Twisck and H. Montanus
have noted from the writings of Rupert; that even some learned
men of the Roman church accorded with Rupert. Johannes Bohemius
and Ludovicus Vives, and their belief against the Roman
church.</p>

<p>Many Christians at Arles, Narbonne, Toulouse, in Gascony,
and other parts of France, called Petrobrusians; they,
according to Peter; abbot</p>

</div><div id="272"> 

<p>of Cluny, reproved the abuses of the Roman church.</p>

<p>Of Arnald of Brescia, and Peter Abelard, who also opposed
infant baptism.</p>

<p>Henricus Petri Tholossanus opposes fifteen articles to the
papists, which are all fully stated.</p>

<p>Some peasants in France, called Apostolics, also teach
against infant baptism, purgatory, praying for the dead,
invocation of the saints.</p>

<p>The Albigenses, from the province AN, and the Waldenses, the
followers of Peter Waldus, now arise; the conversion of Peter
Waldus, and how he, having separated from the Roman church,
gathered unto himself much people, to whom he taught the
doctrine of the holy Gospel, and who became his followers.</p>

<p>Of the dispersion and the different names of the Waldenses;
that there were three divisions of them, one of which agreed in
all articles of religion with the Anabaptists,- that said
people were called Anabaptists; that they rejected infant
baptism; their views with regard to the office of secular
authority, against war, the swearing of oaths, and against
nearly all articles of the Roman church; full statement of the
confession of faith of the Waldenses, in fourteen articles;
another confession of theirs, in twelve articles, made to those
of Merindol and Cabriere; some .precepts, which they left to
their church; some testimonies by ancient writers, respecting
the virtuous life of the Waldenses; how they have been unjustly
accused by their inquisitors and accusers; the time in which
the Waldenses lived and flourished, namely, more than three
hundred years, in France, as well as in Italy; the places where
they sojourned; that almost a thousand towns were filled with
them.</p>

<p>Conclusion.]</p>

<p>As a fire of small coals, when water is poured over it,
though emitting a spark occasionally, yet smoulders for the
most part, stifled as it were, by the smoke, but finally breaks
forth with great power, so that the flame, leaping above the
smoke, can no longer be extinguished with water, or kept down;
so it was, in the twelfth century with the fire of the Gospel,
and particularly as regards the article of baptism upon faith.
Over this, the pope of Rome, with his cardinals, bishops,
priests, and monks, had thus poured, in the preceding century,
the water of so many false doctrines, that scarcely a few
sparks could rise before it was instantly sought to extinguish
them, till finally through the contentions and dissensions of
the Romish socalled clergy, each striving to rise above the
other, the fire of the Gospel, as having been, it was supposed,
sufficiently quenched, was left, in some measure unmolested; in
consequence of which it began to rekindle and burn with such
power that its flames, having surmounted the smoke of papal
superstitions, could not be extinguished by the water of
persecution, suffering, or death; yea, the severest
persecutions and the greatest torments were, at that time, like
oil in the fire.</p>

<p>This shall be shown in the proper place; but first we will
speak of the persons who then opposed infant.baptism and other
Roman superstitions, and, in order to do this systematically,
we will begin thus</p>

<p>For A. D. 1100, the last year of the eleventh, or the
beginning of the twelfth century P. J. Twisck gives this
account, "It appears from writers, that at this time and shortly
after, there existed the Waldenses and the Albigeois, who
opposed the papal errors, and infant baptism, and had to suffer
much misery and persecution from the tyrants." <i>Chyon.,
page</i> 423, Col. 1. However, in the proper place we shall
speak more fully of it.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1105.-This is the year in which mention is made
by writers of certain persons who were accused of having no
good opinion of infant baptism as well as of the
transubstantiation of the bread and wine into the body and
blood of Christ; and of reviling the Roman church. P. J.
<i>Twisck, page</i> 428, Col. 2, from <i>Meyul., fol</i>. 726;
also, <i>H. Mont.,</i> Q. 83.</p>

<p>We briefly mention this here, simply to show the belief of
those people; however, when we come to the account of the
martyrs of this time, we shall show how many there were of
these persons, what befell them on account of their faith, and
where, and through whom this happened.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1119.-It is recorded that at this time there
were certain people, who, under the name of religion, besides
other things of the Roman church, also reviled infant baptism
and the mass. J. <i>Mehyn., B apt. Hist., page</i> 685, from
<i>Joh. de Oppido, inquisit. Tholoss., in Chron.</i> Also,
<i>A. Mell., fol.</i> 422, Col. <i>1.</i></p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1120.-Jean Paul Perrin Lionnois makes mention,
in his <i>History of the Waldenses and Albigenses,</i> 3d
<i>part,</i> 3d <i>book, cap. 1, pages</i> 163, 164, of a
certain manuscript dated A. D. 1120, containing certain sermons
of such people as were-afterwards, in the time of Peter Waldus,
called Waldenses and Albigenses. Besides said sermons, there is
also a tract against the pope of Rome, who is there called
antichrist.</p>

<p>But above all it is worthy of note, that among the marks
ascribed there to antichrist, infant baptism upon a dead faith
is also enumerated, and is called <i>the third work of
antichrist.</i> Then there are further denounced, the mass,
image worship, and relics, or the bones of the saints., "The sixth work of antichrist;" these people said,"consists
in this, that he tolerates open sins, and does not
excommunicate or separate the im7 penitent.", "The seventh work of antichrist consists in this, that he
does not govern or protect his unity through the Holy Spirit,
but by secular power, uniting the latter with spiritual things,
for his aid.", "The eighth work of antichrist is, that he persecutes the
members of the church of Christ, searches out, apprehends and
kills them."</p>

</div><div id="273"> 

<p>Thus it is quite evident, that in these early times, there
were already very many who not only confessed the purity of the
true faith; but even attacked, with spiritual weapons from
God's holy Word, the Roman see, notwithstanding, as appears
from the eighth work of antichrist, they were persecuted,
searched out, apprehended -and killed; -)f which we shall speak
more fully in the proper place.</p>

<p>A. D. 1124.-At this time, appeared Rupert Tuiciensis with
many writings. He did not hesitate to point out the decay, and
the manifold superstitions of the Roman church, presenting at
the same time, the practice of the first Christian and the
apostolic church; by which course he gave the Romanists of his
time sufficient cause to be ashamed and convinced, especially
with regard to the abuse of baptism, which originally had been
administered upon faith, but was now given by them to infants.
All this we hope to show in proper order, from the writings he
has left.</p>

<p>First of all he establishes, that in order to be truly
baptized, faith and confession of the same are required.</p>

<p><i>Jac. Mehrning, Bapt. Hist., page</i> 659. Rupert <i>(lib.
13, on John</i> 18) says, "Everyone that is to be baptized, must
first believe and confess, and not until then be baptized, upon
(or into) the death of Christ, and be buried with Him by
baptism in order to arise."</p>

<p>Who does not see that Rupert here censures and refutes the
practice of those who at his time, namely, among the Roman
church, baptized infants, without regard to faith or confession
of the same, as well as without dying unto, and burying of,
former sins, much less, with arising unto a new life, since
these things cannot exist in infants; for why should he have
connected faith, confession of it, and baptism, if he had not
considered them as belonging together? Why should he say, that
everyone that is to be baptized, must first believe and
confess? which is just what Christ taught, Mark 16:16, and
Philip required of the Ethiopian, Acts 8:37.</p>

<p>Thus it is also with what he says of being baptized upon, or
into, the death of Christ, and of being buried with Him by
baptism, in order to arise, etc.; for this the apostle applies
to those who, having been baptized upon their faith, had become
members of the church at Rome, Rom. <i>6:3,</i> 4, whose faith
was spoken of throughout the whole world, Rom. 1:8.</p>

<p>Page 657, Rupert <i>(lib., 11 on John</i> 15) says, "They
(the teachers) can visibly administer water baptism, but they
cannot give the Holy Spirit, in whom, nevertheless, all the
virtue of baptism consists."</p>

<p>These are words that overthrow the authority and power of
the Romish priests, who, when baptizing infants, were wont to
pretend that they did not only wet them with water, but that
they also expelled Satan from them, and imparted the Holy
Ghost, which they supposed to bring about by certain exorcisms
and blessings; but this is opposed by Rupert, with the
afore-mentioned words.</p>

<p><i>Same page.</i> Rupert <i>(lib. 3, on John</i> 2)
says, "There are many who are indeed baptized with water, but
are nevertheless not renewed in the spirit of their mind,
because they do not put off the works of the old man, though
they are baptized in the water, and confess that they put on
the new man."</p>

<p>'Here the reason is shown, why many, though baptized with
water, are not renewed in the spirit of their mind; however,
the blame is charged upon the candidates themselves, and not
upon the teachers, who had not blessed them; but it is because
those who were baptized, did not themselves, though it was
their duty, put off the works of the old man. For, God's wisdom
(that is, the Spirit of God) does not enter into a malicious
soul; nor does it dwell in the body that is subject unto sin.
<i>Sap.</i> 1:4.</p>

<p>It must be noted, moreover, that when he speaks here of
being baptized in the water, of confessing something, and of
putting on the new man, and that all this is said of the
candidates of his time, it is clearly evident, that then, in
the church of which he speaks, adult and intelligent persons
were baptized, who, confessing their former sins, could put on
the new man, that is, a sinless and godly life.</p>

<p>Page 662, num. 17. Rupert <i>(lib.</i> 2, <i>on John 1)</i>
says, "To be baptized with the Holy Ghost, is to receive the
gift of the Holy Ghost, who does not [only] point out sin, but
helps against sin, making us, from servants of sin, children of
God." Again, "He baptizes us with fire, when He, through the Holy Spirit,
makes us strong in love, constant in faith, shining in
knowledge, and burning with good zeal."</p>

<p>He has respect here to the promise which John gave to those
who came to his ttaptism, saying, "He (Christ) shall baptize you with the Holy Ghost, and with
fire," Matt. <i>3:</i>11; John 1:33; which as everyone knows,
is a promise given not to infants, but to adult persons; hence
Rupert also has such in view here.</p>

<p>This appears still more clearly, when he says of said
candidates, that they, receiving the gift of the Holy Ghost,
were made, from servants of sin, children of God; for no one
can in truth be called a servant of sin, who has not first
served sin; and no one can be made a child of God, who has not
first been a child of the world; for what one becomes or will
become, he has not been before.</p>

<p>With what he says further, of being"strong in love, constant
in faith, shining in knowledge, and burning with good zeal," he
certainly indicates that he is speaking of such persons as,
having attained to the use of their reason, have knowledge and
ability for true love, faith in God, the knowledge of Jesus
Christ, and a good zeal for the observance of the commandments
of the Lord; for by such, and</p>

</div><div id="274"> 

<p>none else, can these things be undertaken, and, with God's
blessing, carried out.</p>

<p>In another place Rupert relates what customarily took place
as regards the candidates, baptism itself, and some of the
circumstances pertaining to it. He says, "All the youth of the
church, whom they had sought to win to God, during the year,
through the preaching of the word, gave in their names, on the
fourth day of the week in lent, when Easter approached; and
when each of them, in the subsequent days till Easter, heard
the rule of faith, in which he had been begotten and had grown
up, he finally died (that is, he put to death sin), and rose
with Christ (that is, to a new life), confessing the faith with
full confidence, at baptism." <i>Bapt. Hist., page</i> 706,
<i>D. hicecom., lib.</i> 2, <i>ca-Q. 14,</i> from <i>Rupert,
lib. 4, cap. 18.</i></p>

<p>Upon this, a certain pedobaptist, D. J. V. (same page), once
said, "But the Christian fear of God pleases us better, since
the baptism of the ancients, and with it the ancient custom
(namely, of baptizing upon faith), are abolished, and the
believers now give to their children their names, at baptism,
before the eighth day after their birth; for this agrees best
with the practice of the Jews, who gave to their children their
names on the eighth day of circumcision, and with the custom of
the heathen, who did the like to their children, on the eighth,
ninth, or tenth day after their birth."</p>

<p>This is certainly plain language. He says that the baptism
of the ancients (that is, the baptism according to the
institution of Christ, Mark 16:16), and with it also the
ancient custom (namely, of baptizing upon faith), are abolished
(that is, by those who have introduced infant baptism), and lie
praises this as a Christian fear of God, saying, that it
pleases him better. How would any one dare speak with greater
presumption and shamelessness of the commandments of Jesus
Christ? It grieves me to say more about this and I will leave
it, adding, however, the remarks of Jacob Mehrning in referring
to these words, "A fine arrangement this I Christians are no
longer to conform to the baptismal ordinance of Christ, but
Christ is to accommodate Himself with His baptism, to the
practice of the Jews and the custom of the heathen. Fie, Satan!
how brazenly dost thou here disclose thy cloven footl"</p>

<p>P. J. Twisck and H. Montanus quote the following words from
the writings of Rupert, "Formerly it was customary to renew the
children, throughout the year, with the Word of God, in order
to present to them, on the approach of Easter, the faith, which
they had to confess at baptism; but, that Christianity might
grow, and the net of the Gospel become full, it pleased the
church (that is, the Roman church), because of the danger of
temporal death, that the children of Christians should be
baptized immediately." <i>Chron., page 443, col.</i> 2,
<i>Nietigh., page 83,</i> from <i>Rupert, lib. 4, de Dizrinis
Oficies, cap. 18.</i> "With Rupert," writes Twisck,"several
learned men of the Roman church in this last century agree, as
is adduced from their books. John Bohemius says: 'Formerly it
was customary to administer baptism only to those who had
previously been instructed in the faith, and who were examined
seven times in the weeks preceding Easter and Whitsuntide; but
when baptism was afterwards deemed essential to eternal life,
it was ordained that new-born infants should be baptized, and
that sponsors should be provided, who, in their stead,
confessed the faith, and renounced Satan."' <i>Same page,</i>
from <i>.I. Boh., lib.</i> 2, <i>de Gent. Morib., Loop der
Werelt, page 41.</i>, "This is confirmed by Ludovicus Vives, who says: 'No one was
brought to baptism among us, until he had reached his years,
and when he knew what the mystic water signified, and himself
desired to be washed with it."' <i>Same page,</i> from <i>Lud.
hiv., in Annat. C~vit. dei Augustini, lib. 1, cap.</i> 27,
also, H. <i>Mont., page 88.</i></p>

<p>But, to return to Rupert, Twisck says, he wrote not only on
baptism, but also composed many other books, against the papal
views, of the holy Scriptures, of justification, of two
sacraments, of the Supper under both forms, and of the
spiritual presence of Christ. He also says of antichrist, that
he will send his messengers and preachers throughout the whole
world; he will first convert (that is, turn to himself) and
overcome the kings and princes, and then, through their
instrumentality, will raise persecution over all the nations
who will sincerely confess Christ. <i>Chron., page 444, col.
1,</i> from <i>RuQert, in Apoc., lib. 3, cap. 13, Johan.
Fobri., fol. 158, Anth. Jac., fol. 113, John Munst., fol.
140.</i></p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1126.-At this time, there were many Christians
at Arles, Narbonne, Toulouse, in Gascony, and at different
other places in France, who were afterwards called
Petrobrusians, after one Peter Bruis,* their most prominent
teacher, and who also neither sanctioned nor practiced infant
baptism. This is attested by Peter, abbot of Cluny, who says,
in the beginning of his tract against the Petrobrusians, "They
deny that infants who have not yet attained the years of
understanding, can be saved by the baptism of Christ; and say
that the faith of another cannot help those who cannot use
their own faith; for, according to their view, not the faith of
another, but each one's own faith saves with baptism, because
the Lord says: 'He that believeth and is baptized, shall be
saved; but he that believeth not, shall be damned.' <i>" Bapt.
Hist., page 598, H. Mont. Nietigh., page</i> 83, from
<i>Biblioth. Patr. Torn. 12, part 2, fol. 206. Also, Baron., A.
D. 1126.</i></p>

<p>The foregoing is so clearly opposed to infant baptism and in
favor of baptism upon faith, that it is unnecessary to add a
single word of explana-</p>

<br /><cite>* This Peter de Bruis, with his disciple Henry,
was known, A.D. 1130, throughout all France, on account of his
learning and his boldness in reproving the abuses of the Roman
church.-Bapt. Hiat., page 686.</cite> 

</div><div id="275"> 

<p>tion; hence, we will let the matter rest, and proceed to the
others who maintained and confirmed the same belief, both in
and after those times.</p>

<p>NOTE. A. D. 1128. Arnulph, Bishop of Lyons, an excellent
preacher of the Christian doctrine, was secretly murdered at
this time, through craftiness, by the clergy, because he
reproved too severely their luxuriousness, lewdness and gross
errors. He presented to them, for their imitation, Christ's
poverty, and His most holy life and walk. P. 1. <i>Twisck,
page</i> 446, col. 1, <i>Chron. Platinx, fol</i>. 273,
<i>Histor. Andr., fol.</i> 57; <i>Histor. Georg., lib.</i>
5.</p>

<p>A. D. 1131.-About this time, also Hildebert, Bishop of
Mayence, wrote and preached vehemently against the power and
authority of the pope, whom he did not hesitate to charge with
tyranny; declaring also, that the city of Rome had been made by
him the seat of all mischief and wickedness, because the fear
of God and love were banished from it. For this he was
imprisoned at Rome, and treated very cruelly. P. <i>J. Twisck,
Chron., page</i> 448, col. 2, and <i>page</i> 499, col. 1, from
Paul <i>Merul. Tytthres., fol.</i> 746.</p>

<p>A. D. 1139.-A little before or after this time, as Baronius
says, Arnald, a lector, at Brescia, in Italy, taught against
infant baptism; as did also Peter Abelard, of whom Arnald had
obtained his doctrine, in France. Concerning this much might be
related here, but, as we afterwards, in the proper place, shall
have to speak of the martyrdom of these persons, we will say no
more of this here, deeming the statement that they opposed
infant baptism sufficient for the present. As regards their
doctrine, as well as what happened to them, see <i>Bapt. Hist.,
page</i> 598, <i>H. Mont. Nietigh., page</i> 84, from
<i>Baron.,</i> A. D.1139, <i>Num.</i> 3, also A. D. 1145,
<i>Num.</i> 3, and A. D. 1147, <i>Num.</i> 6.</p>

<p>NOTE.--"In the year 1139 or 1140," writes P. J.
Twisck,"there was in Italy an honorable, godly, and learned
man, simple in his life, called Arnold of Brescia, who dared
teach and preach mightily against the power and authority of
the pope and against the monks and priests; on account qf which
he was excommunicated by Innocent, the pope of Rome, and
greatly persecuted. Arnold, therefore, fled into Switzerland,
and remained at Zurich, exposing all the abominations of the
papists." <i>Chron., page</i> 466, col. 2, from <i>Hist.
Georg., lib.</i> 5. <i>Chron. Car., lib.</i> 4. <i>Leonh.,
lib.</i> 5. <i>Zegh., fol</i>. 292. <i>Hist. Eccl. Casp.
Hedio.,</i> 3d <i>part, cap. 11, D. Andr. Hond., lib.</i> 2,
<i>cap.</i> 26. <i>Seb. Franck., fol</i>. 26, 39. <i>Merul. T
ytt., fol</i>. 750, 753, 757, 760, 761, 853. <i>Jan.
Cresp.,</i> fol. 281. Of his death we shall speak in the
history of the martyrs, for the year 1145.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1147.-Henricus Petri Tholossanus, that is,
Henry of Toulouse, at this time and afterwards, vigorously
attacked infant baptism, with the spiritual weapons of divine
truth; which he had commenced already in the time of Peter
Bruis, as was mentioned for the year 1126; and he did not,
cease to pursue it until, and after the death of said Peter
Bruis; which matter is described by <i>Jacob Mehrning, Bapt.
Hist., page</i> 664 as follows, "Now Peter de Bruis having been
condemned and burnt, Henry strenuously maintained his doctrine;
for he was a co-worker with Peter, and had not a few followers
of his doctrine." Peter Cluniacensis writes, that among other
things, he taught</p>

<p>1. That children may not be baptized or saved through the
faith of another; but they must be baptized and saved through
their own faith; for baptism without individual faith, saves no
one.</p>

<p>2. That individual faith without baptism is also
useless.</p>

<p>3. That children that have not yet reached the years of
understanding, cannot be saved by the baptism of Christ.</p>

<p>4. That those who have been baptized in infancy must, when
they become older, be rebaptized, for this, he says, is not
rebaptizing, but, much rather, baptizing aright.</p>

<p>5. That the body and blood of Christ are not offered up in
the public mass; and that this sacrifice has no virtue to the
salvation of souls. Again, that the altars ought to be cast
down or broken in pieces.</p>

<p>6.. That the doctrine of the forms and of the
transubstantiation of the sacrament is false.</p>

<p>7. That the Supper ought not to be administered any more (as
their accusers charged them with maintaining), it having been
given once by Christ to the apostles.</p>

<p>8. That., the sacrifice of the mass, prayer, alms, and such
like, works of the living for the dead, are folly, wickedness,
and of no avail.</p>

<p>9. That monks and priests should marry, rather than commit
fornication, and live continually in lewdness.</p>

<p>10. That crucifixes, should not be honored or worshiped; and
the many crosses, which tend to superstition, ought much rather
to be abolished than retained.</p>

<p>11. That man ought not to build so many costly churches,
which are frequently not used for hearing the Word of God; and
those that are built should be demolished.</p>

<p>12. That by the bawling church singing of the priests and
monks God is mocked, and not reconciled.</p>

<p>13. That flesh may be eaten on Sunday and other days.</p>

<p>14. That they do not receive all the books of the Old and
the New Testaments, namely those which are called
<i>apocryphal;</i> but the Gospel only.</p>

<p>15. That they believe only the holy Scriptures, but do not
place the writings of the fathers on an equality with them.</p>

<p>This doctrine, and these articles, Peter Cluniacensus, who
quoted them from the writings of Henry, undertook to refute;
but the <i>Centuriatores Magdeburgenses</i> accept them for the
most part, and refute Peter. See concerning this, <i>Bapt.
Hist.,</i> pp. 665, 666:</p>

</div><div id="276"> 

<p>Said articles certainly show of what faith and persuasion
Henry was, and that he did not continue to adhere to monachism,
although he had first embraced it; for, to be a monk and to
make such a profession, are incompatible with each other. On
this account he had to suffer much ignominy and calumny from
Bernhard, who was regarded as a saint among the Romanists. The
latter not only called him an ignorant fellow and an apostate
from the Roman church, but also charged him with many
unbecoming, and ungodly things, though by other writers, of
greater note and credibility, he has been exempted, and
acquitted of them.</p>

<p>We will close our remarks concerning Henry, and give, if
necessary, a fuller account of the matter, when we shall speak
of his sufferings for the truth; however, in reference to this,
we refer the reader briefly, to <i>Bapt. Hist., pages 685,
686,</i> from A. <i>M.,</i> fol. <i>423, 424, ex Petr. Cluniac.
Duae, epist. 141 and 142, ad Comit. Tholoss. and Tholossanos,
idem, Serm., 65, 66, super. Cant. vitae Bernh., cap. 3. Cent.
Magd. X11., cap. 5, and Illyr. Cat. Test. Verit., lib. 15, tit.
Petri de Bruis, etc.</i></p>

<p>A. <i>D. 1155.</i> This is the time in which, according to
Nicholas Sander (but according to Caesar Baronius. A. D.
<i>1147),</i> there were in the vicinity of Toulouse, in
France, certain humble people, who, by other writers, are
called peasants, but who properly were termed Apostolics, that
is, followers of the apostles. It is stated of them, that they
would hold only to the apostolic writings, and that they
therefore condemned infant baptism, as well as purgatory,
praying for the dead, the invocation of the saints, etc.</p>

<p>More might be related here, but as some of them have
attained to the martyrs' crown, and we consequently shall
afterwards have to speak more fully with regard to them, we
will leave the matter until then, being satisfied, meanwhile,
that they professed this good profession, and rejected the
evil. See concerning this, P. <i>J. Twisck,. Chron., page 469,
col. 2,</i> from Nicol. <i>Sand., Hist. der Mart.
Doops-ges.,</i> A. 8, <i>D. Anth. Jac., fol.118;</i> also
<i>Bapt. Hist., page 599. H. Montan. Niehtigh., page 84,
etc.</i></p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1160.-This is the year which, of old, was noted
with joy by many pious and well-meaning Christians, who
detested popery; and in which, even to this day, not a few of
the God-fearing rejoice. For then, and especially, shortly
after, popery and her superstitions received the severest blow
of which we read in history; and the divine truth, which,
almost to this very time, seemed, in many respects, to be
trampled under foot most atrociously, now joyfully raised her
head and triumphed. The doctrine against infant baptism, the
swearing of oaths, war, in short, against nearly all the evil
practices and perverted worship of the Roman church, of which
one formerly dared speak only with fear and trembling, and that
often only in private, was now ~ boldly, yea, frequently,
publicly preached and defended, and, notwithstanding he threats
of the pope of Rome, maintained. This was first commenced
chiefly by Peter Waldo at Lyons, in France, and carried out by
his successors; however, in order to treat the matter
systematically, we will begin with the conversion of Peter
Waldo, and then go on to his successors.</p>

<h2>OF THE CONVERSION OF PETER WALDO, AND THE RISE OF
THE WALDENSES, ETC.</h2> 

<p>M. Matthias Flaccius Illyricus (in his <i>Catalog. Testitum
heritatis, between fol. 263, and fol. 277, according to Jac.
Mehrning in Bapt. Hist., page 601),</i> writes, "About A. D.
<i>1160,</i> several of the principal citizens of Lyons were
together, conversing on various matters, as is customary in the
summer season, in Italy and France. As they were thus standing
together, one of them suddenly fell down to the ground and
expired, before their eyes., "This awful occurrence, an example of the mortality of man,
and of the divine wrath, terrified one of their number, namely,
Peter Waldo, a man who was very wealthy. He began to reflect
and resolved (impelled, no doubt, by the Holy Spirit), to
repent, amend his life, and be more diligent in the fear of God
than he had hitherto been. He therefore began to distribute
alms liberally, and at convenient seasons, to put his household
and others who came to him, in mind of the good, and to
admonish them to repentance and true godliness., "When he had thus for some time, done much;good to the poor,
and was becoming the longer the more zealous to learn, as well
as to teach others, the people also came to him more and more;
he therefore began to present to them, not his own ideas, but
the holy Scriptures, and to expound and explain the same in the
common French language., "But the bishop and the prelates, who, as Christ says, have
the key of heaven, and yet do not go in themselves, nor will
suffer others to enter, were greatly vexed that this (in their
opinion) unlearned and common man, should bring the holy
Scriptures into the vernacular langdage, and expound the same,
and that already great numbers came into his house, whom he
instructed and admonished., "However, he was greatly in earnest, to promote both the
honor of God and the salvation of men; and the people were so
eager for the Word of God, which, in the churches, was not
preached pure, nor publicly, that they could not be turned away
by the command of these papistic Pharisees and high priests;
hence, both the teacher and those taught said, that one ought
to obey God rather than men., "Waldo therefore resolved, notwithstanding the commands of
the wicked, to sustain the hungry Christians not only with his
temporal living, which, owing to the liberal distribution,
decreased day by day, but also with the Word of God, and good
instructions and admonitions; and since the prelates, by
tyranny and unchristian decrees, sought to suppress and
exterminate the simDle and true Dreach-</p>

</div><div id="277"> 

<p>ing of the Word of God, sufficient reason was thus given to
Waldo and his adherents, to inquire the more diligently into
the religion and intentions of the priests, and to speak the
more boldly against them., "The contest with the priests becoming the longer the more
violent, more confusions and superstitions were discovered in
the papistic religion, and attacked. At this time Waldo also
read, in the vernacular, certain testimonies from the writings
of the fathers, with which he defended his own not only with
the holy Scriptures, but also with the testimonies of the
ancients, against the enemies of the truth., "When the bishop with his papistic Pharisees and scribes saw
with what constancy Waldo and his adherents taught the Word of
God, and were pained, that their own infamy, ignorance, and
fickleness in doctrine, and other adsurdities, were attacked by
Waldo and his followers, they excommunicated them one and all.
Not long afterwards, perceiving that also by excommunication
they could not be deterred from their purpose, they relegated
them into misery, persecuted them with imprisonment, the sword,
and fire, and treated them very atrociously, in order that they
might be compelled, on account of the existing distress and
danger, to remove from Lyons and disperse into various
countries., "It is presumable, that the congregations of Waldo, or some
of them, whom he taught at Lyons, were there for four or five
years, until they were utterly driven away from that city; for
Waldo was a man of powerful abilities, and is said to have had
many relatives, and, hence, could not be checked or suppressed
in a trice; besides, he did not immediately, at the beginning,
attack the priests of the pope., "Finally, these godly people were proceeded against with
great fury, throughout Christendom; they were sent hither and
thither by the inquisitors; for which we have to thank those
atrocious wolves that go about in sheep's clothing, and call
themselves monks." <i>Bapt. Hist., pages 601-4, front Matt.
Flacc.</i></p>

<p>Claude de Rubis relates, that Waldo and his followers were
completely expelled from Lyons; while Albert de Capitaneis
says, that they could not be expelled entirely. We have not
been able to ascertain anything further about this first
persecution, save that the Waldenses, so called after Waldo,
after escaping from Lyons, followed him, and then dispersed, in
different bands, into various countries. <i>Balthas. Lydius,
History of the Waldenses, printed at Dortrecht, 1624, 1st book
of the first part, cap. 1, page 3, col. 1, front Claud. de Rub.
Hist., p. 269. Albert de Cap., book of the origin of the
Waldenses, page 1.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-Peter Blesensus, a learned man, well known by his
writings, taught, A. D. <i>1167,</i> that Rome was the true
Babylon of which John has prophesied; that the.officials of the
Roman court were genuine harpies, and the priests, true calves
of Bethel, priests of Baal, Egyptian idols, and that at Rome
everything could be had for money. <i>Chron. van den Onderg.,
page 479, col. 1, from Merula, fol. 767.</i></p>

<p><i>About A. D. 1170.</i> For the year <i>1160,</i> we gave
an account of Peter Waldo and his conversion, as well as of his
having brought many who sat in the darkness of popery, to the
light of the holy Gospel. It is stated of these people, that in
doctrine, faith, and life they were like the Apostolics, of
whom we made mention for the year <i>1155,</i> and stated, that
they were opposed to infant baptism, purgatory, etc. The rise
of these people, called Waldenses and Albigenses, is fixed
about A. D. <i>1170,</i> that is, ten years after Peter Waldo
began to teach them; which matters shall hereafter be treated
more fully and circumstantially. Compare <i>Bapt. Hist., page
599,</i> with <i>Nietigh., page. 85; also, Introduction to the
Martyrs" Mirror, fol. 50, col. 1, 2,</i> (although the
principal rising of said people is there fixed A. D.
<i>1176)</i> from <i>Bar. in Chron., A. D. 1176,</i> num. 1, 2,
3.</p>

<p>NOTE.-It appears from several ancient writers, that the
Waldenses, or, at least, people who held the same belief,
existed long before the year <i>1170,</i> yea, before
<i>1160;</i> seeing that already in the year <i>1160</i> they
had increased to such an extent, that they were summoned to
Rome before a synod, and were condemned there as obstinate
heretics. <i>Johan. de Oppido.</i> The same occurred A. D.
<i>1164,</i> in the synod of <i>Tours, Bapt. Hist., p. 676.</i>
Hence, when their beginning is fixed A. D. <i>1170,</i> this
must not be understood Of their origin, but of their rising,
progress, and greatest prosperity.</p>

<h2>OF THE DISPERSION AND THE VARIOUS NAMES OF THE WALDENSES, OR FOLLOWERS OF PETER WALDO</h2> 

<p>When Peter Waldo with his adherents, through the cruel
hatred of the papists, had to leave the city of Lyons, on
account of his faith, they became distributed and scattered
into different parts of the world, and, hence, received various
appellations, with regard to the places where they resided, as
well as with regard to their faith, and to the accusations
brought against them, especially by the Romanists.</p>

<p>In the <i>History of</i> <i>the Waldenses,</i> by D.
<i>Balthasar Lydius, 1st book of the first part, cap. 3, page
4,</i> col. 2, and <i>page 5, col.</i> 1, the following account
is found of the various names of said people, "They, in the first place, called them Waldenses, after
Waldo, who was a citizen of Lyons: and, after the district of
Albi, they called them Albigenses.</p>

<p>' , And because those who adhered to the doctrine of Waldo,
left Lyons, stripped of all human means, having had to leave
behind the most of their goods, they were derisively called,
<i>The Poor Men of Lyons."</i></p>

</div><div id="278">

<p> "In Dauphine they were by way of derision called
<i>Chaignards,</i> that is, <i>Dogs.</i>, "Also because a part of them crossed the Alps, they were
called <i>Transmontani.</i>, "After Joseph, one of Waldo's disciples who preached in the
bishopric of Dije, Lower Dauphine, they were called
<i>Josephists.</i>, "In England they were called <i>Lollards,</i> after
Lollardus, one of those who preached there., "After two priests, Henry and Esperon, who taught the
doctrine of Waldo in Languedoc, they were called
<i>Henricians</i> and <i>Esperonists.</i>, "After Arnold, one of their pastors or teachers, who
preached in Albigeois, they were called <i>Arnoldists.</i>, "In Province they were called, in an unknown tongue,
<i>Siccars.</i>, "In Italy they were called <i>Fratricellii,</i> that is,
<i>Little Brothers,</i> because they lived like brothers in
true unity., "Also, as they observed no other day of rest or holiday,
than Sunday, they were styled <i>Insabbathi</i> or
<i>Insabbathas,</i> that is, <i>Sabbathless, or</i> not
observing Sabbaths., "Because they were continually subject to, and underwent
sufferings, they were called <i>Patarins</i> or
<i>Patariens,</i> that is, <i>Suferers,</i> from the Latin word
<i>pati,</i> to suffer., "Because they, as poor wanderers, fled and traveled from
country to country, they were termed <i>Passagenes,</i> that
is, <i>Travelers</i> or <i>Vagrants.</i>, "In Germany they were called <i>Gazares,</i> which
signifies, <i>Accursed</i> and <i>Abominable;</i> but thus the
pope of Rome has always been accustomed to call those who
oppose the Roman faith., "In Flanders they were called <i>Turilucent;ini,</i> that
<i>is, Dwellers with Wolves,</i> because, on account of
persecution, they were often compelled to hide and live in
wildernesses and forests, in close proximity t0 Wolves., "Sometimes they were named after the region or district
where they lived, as Albigenses, from Albi; Toulousians, from
Toulouse; Lombards, from Lombardy; Picards, from Picardy;
Lyonists, from Lyons; Bohemians, from Bohemia."</p> 

<p>Thereafter, the origin and cause of said names, according to
Jean Paul Perrin Lyonnois, who has noted the same, is further
explained by D. Balthasar Lydius, in his treatise on the
<i>Various names of the Waldenses, 3d chapter of Perrin,</i>
from <i>page 48, col. 1,</i> to <i>page 82, col. 2;</i> in
which the true innocence and unrightness of said people, though
they were sometimes called bad names, is demonstrated in all
simplicity and clearness.</p>

<p>But that nothing may be wanting here, we will, for
additional information, subjoin several other names of the
Waldenses, passed over by B. Lydius (from J. P. Perrin), but
mentioned by <i>Abr. Mellinus,</i> in his <i>History of the
Persecutions and Martyrs,</i> for <i>A. D. 1619, fol. 449, col.
3, 4,</i> by misprint, but, properly, fol. <i>439, col. 3,
4,</i> and some of them, further exnlained. For, among other
thins, he writes there, that said people were also"called
<i>Catharists,</i> that is, <i>Heretics,</i> because they were
called heretics by their opponents., "They were called <i>Publicans,</i> because they were
compared by the Romanists to publicans or open sinners., "From the Latin word lolium, signifying weed, they were
called <i>Lollards;</i> though, as stated above, this name was
also given them from Lollardus, a teacher; however, they were
likened to lolium, a weed that grows among the corn, because
they, (the papists said) ought to be rooted out like the tares
from among the corn; this name they also retained in Germany,
Sarmatia, Livonio," etc., "They were called <i>Runcari</i> because they lived near
Runcalia, not far from Piacenza., "They were called <i>Barrini,</i> from Mount Barrio of
Barian, a place in the district of Crema, in Italy. Also
<i>Cotterellos,</i> because they lived on the mountains known
as the Cottian Alps. They were also called <i>Comists,</i>
because they lived in the city of Como, in Italy., "In Germany they were called <i>Grubenheimer,</i> that is,
<i>Cave-dwellers,</i> because necessity compelled them to live
underground, in pits and caves., "In France they were termed <i>Texerants,</i> that is,
<i>Weavers,</i> because there were many weavers among
them."</p>

<p>These and similar names have been given the Waldenses in
former times; which we have deemed necessary to notice briefly,
in order that the readers, in the sequel of our history,
whenever these or similar persons are spoken of, may know who
and of what belief they were.</p>

<h2>OF THE WALDENSES WHO IN ALL RESPECTS WERE OF ONE BELIEF WITH THE BAPTISTS (ALSO CALLED ANABAPTISTS); OF WHOM WE SHALL SPEAK THROUGHOUT OUR ACCOUNT</h2> 

<p>Although Peter Waldo, from whom the Waldenses derived their
name, was enkindled with a true zeal for the divine and
evangelical truth; yea, so that in the beginning very many,
through his doctrine and life, burned as with a heavenly fire,
and were zealous with him for God and the pure truth; yet not
all remained steadfast in the truth; which appears to have been
caused from their being dispersed into different countries and
becoming separated from one another, by reason of the
persecutions.</p>

<p>Some were also called Waldenses though they had no
fellowship with them, and never were true brethren with these
people.</p>

<p>Others, though they had once been members of that church,
had joined themselves to others, thus forsaking, either from
fear of death, or for some other reason, their former
confession, especially in the article of the meekness and
patience of Jesus.</p>

<p>Others, notwithstanding that they filled worldly offices.
yea, even engaged in war, were sometimes.</p>

</div><div id="279"> 

<p>though perversely, as shall be shown in the proper place,
called Waldenses or Albigenses; only (as can be inferred) for
the reason, that some Waldenses or Albigenses lived under their
protection, who were tolerated by connivance, or otherwise
countenanced by them.</p>

<p>We shall therefore pass over all those concerning whom there
is evidence that they only bore the name of Waldenses, but were
not such in deed; and turn to those of whom ancient history
testifies that they confirmed the name by the deed in faith as
well as in doctrine.</p>

<p>Sebastian Franck, in <i>Chron. van de Ord. en Sect. tier
Rom., fol. 153, col. 3,</i> writes, that the Waldenses were
divided into two, or, as some maintain, three divisions, one of
which, in all points, held the same tenets with the Anabaptists
(Baptists), having all things in common. They baptize no
infants, and do not believe at all in the presence of the
Lord's body in the sacrament. A little before this, he
says, "They invoke no saints or creatures, but only God. They do
not swear at all, yea, they regard this as improper for a
Christian. They also have no images, and do not bow before or
worship them. They allege, that the sacrament ought not to be
worshiped, but Christ, at the right hand of His Father, and
God, in Spirit and in truth. They suffer no beggars among them,
but help and assist each other as brethren." See concerning
them, <i>Seb. Franck, Chron. Rom. Ketter, fol. 121, col. 2.
Introduction, page 50, col. 2. H. Mont. Nietigh., page 86, Jac.
du Bois contra Montanum, page 158.</i></p>

<p>These are the true Waldenses, whom we have chosen, and who
shall be the aim of our whole account.</p>

<h2>HOW THE WALDENSES WERE CALLED ANABAPTIST BY THE ROMANISTS THEMSELVES</h2> 

<p>This is stated by Jacob Mehrning in different places. after
he has declared, upon the testimony of ancient writers, that
they were called by the peculiar names of those who were
previously already termed Anabaptists."From Berengarius," says
he, <i>(Bacent;t. Hist., page 666),</i> "they were called
Berenearians; from Peter de Bruis, Petrobrusians; from Henry.
Henricians; from the apostles, Apostolics; from Peter Waldo,
Waldenses, and so forth. Among us Germans," he writes (pcent;.
695, 696),"the papist, Lutheran, and Calvinistic pedobaptists
hill contemptuously call them Anabaptists; in the Netherlands
they are called Mennists, from Menno Simons. one of their
principal teachers."</p>

<p>Thus, according to this testimony, the ancient Waldenses
agreed in faith not only with Berengarius, Peter Bruis, Henry
Tholossanus, and the Apostolics, of whom we have given an
account before; but also with the Mennonites or Baptists of the
present day, who by nearly all the rest in socalled Christendom
are stigmatized with the contemptuous appellation of
<i>Anabaitists,</i> even as their former brethren, the
above-mentioned waldo were called by those from whom they were
separated, namely, the papists.</p>

<p>On <i>pages 677</i> and <i>678,</i> these Waldenses are
several times called Anabaptists, with the statement, that long
before the time of John Huss, they lived in Poland and Bohemia,
as well as in France, as is noted in that place. From
<i>Hagecus, Dubravius, Micchovius, Cromerus, Jacob Usserius,
Jounetus, M. Glaneus, Keyser's Car. Edict.</i></p>

<p>It is true, that by some of said papistic authors these
people are represented in a very bad light, with regard to
their faith, as well as their life; however, the writer of the
History of Baptism refutes said representation, saying (p.
<i>679,</i> from M. <i>Flaccius and Cent. Magd.),</i> that they
were slandered by their accusers, and that in doctrine and life
they were very pious, orthodox, and godly Christians.</p>

<p>Although we might stop here, as having sufficiently proved,
that the ancient Waldenses were one people with the Baptists of
the present day, yet, since this is a much assailed point, we
will add, for further confirmation, a few more testimonies from
papistic writers. Abbot Peter Cluniacensis, in the first
article of Peter Bruis and Henry Tholossanus, makes mention of
the belief of the Waldenses, and says, that"they (with said two
men) denied that infants in the years of their irrationality
can be saved by the baptism of Christ, and maintained, that the
faith of another cannot help them, because they cannot use
their own faith." Hence, they said, "Though the infants are
baptized by the papists, yet, since they cannot believe, their
infancy preventing them, they are by no means saved by baptism.
But we choose a proper time of faith, and do not rebaptize men,
as is alleged against us, since they know their God, and are
prepared to believe on Him; but we then baptize them aright,
lest it might be said, that they are rightly baptized, who,
though baptized in infancy, are not baptized with the baptism
by-which sin is washed away." This the Waldenses are wont to
say, says the writer. <i>Bapt. Hist., page 687.</i></p>

<p>The writer of the <i>History of Baptism</i> makes the
following comments on the twelfth of the <i>Magdeburg
Centuries, cent;Q.</i> 428, 429, "Concerning the origin of the
Waldenses, who sprung from Peter Waldo, Mellinus relates all
that has been given above from Flaccius. Hence it came, that
all his disciples, followers and adherents were at that time
called <i>Anabaptists</i> by the malicious papists; and also,
<i>Poor Men of Lyons,</i> of which name they needed not to be
ashamed for Christ's sake, who also, for our sakes, became
poor, that through His poverty He might make us rich. But when
they subsequently, through persecution, became dispersed from
France into other countries, as England, Poland, Livonia, etc.,
other names were given them." <i>B. H., cent;. 695.</i></p>

<p>Here it is expressly stated that the Waldenses, from ancient
times were designated by the papists by the name of Anabaptists, doubtless because</p>

</div><div id="280"> 

<p>they baptized those who had been baptized in their infancy
again, or, at least, aright, afterwards, when they had attained
to the faith; for these are words of the Waldenses themselves,
as has been shown above. Moreover, that said people were
scattered from France not only into England, Poland, and
Livonia, but also into many other countries, yea, almost over
the whole known world, has previously been proved in part, and
shall hereafter, if necessary, be demonstrated still more
fully.</p>

<p><i>Bacent;t. Hist., page 710.</i> D. Vicecomes <i>(lib. 2,
cap. 2),</i> gives evidence from, Bernhard, that the Waldenses
were anabaptists, as the ungodly now call the Christian
baptists (the Baptists), who did not believe in infant
baptism.</p>

<p>It is certainly clearly and plainly said, that the Waldenses
were anabaptists, or, at least, that they were called by that
name; the reason why is also shown, namely, because they, like
the Baptists of the present day, did not believe in infant
baptism.</p>

<p>Jacob Mehrning, having noted that the Waldenses were called
anabaptists, says (cent;. 696), "But their right, proper, and true name is, and should be,
by rights, <i>Christians</i> and <i>Christianbacent;tists;</i>
because they, according to the command and ordinance of Christ,
baptized none but those who, according to Christ's baptismal
ordinance, know Christ from His holy Gospel, believe on Him,
and upon such faith, are rightly baptized in the name of the
Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost."</p>

<h2>VARIOUS TESTIMONIES THAT THE WALDENSES REJECTED
INFANT BAPTISM</h2> 

<p>In <i>Jacob Mehrning's History of Baptism</i> there is
introduced the testimony of Reinerius, in former times a priest
of the order of Dominicans, who lived in and about the time of
the rise of the Waldenses, and who gives the following with
regard to their belief, "T~ey (the Waldenses) say, that the
washing of baptism given to infants is of no use." See
concerning this, <i>Bibliotheca Patrum, Tom. 13, page 300.
Also, H. Montan. Nietigh., page 86,</i> which also agrees with
the confession that jean Paul Perrin relates in his <i>History
of the Waldenses, art. 7.</i></p>

<p>On <i>pages 618</i> and <i>619,</i> several articles are
quoted from a very ancient book, which, in papistic manner, are
imputed to them as errors, though they spoke correctly and
according to truth with regard to them.</p>

<p>1. They reject all the sacraments of the church (that is, as
they were administered according to the Romish custom).</p>

<p><i>2.</i> Of the sacrament of holy baptism they say, that
the questions of the catechism .are put in vain [that is, to
infants, who do not comprehend such questions, and do not have
the ability to reply to them; whereby they sufficiently
rejected infant baptism, which it was not customary to
administer without putting said questions to the unintelligent
infants.]</p>

<p><i>3.</i> That the absolution which is pronounced over
infants (at baptism) is useless.</p>

<p>4. That the sponsors (who were accustomed to recite the
creed as out of the child's mouth) do not understand what they
answer to the priests.</p>

<p>By the fourth as well as the third article, not only is
infant baptism itself abolished, but also its appurtenances of
absolution and sponsors are derided and declared a vain,
useless, and ridiculous performance. But in the first article
already, where it is said, that they rejected all the
sacraments of the (Roman) church, among which sacraments infant
baptism was not one of the least, but one of the chief ones; it
is plainly taught, that they did not believe at all in infant
baptism, but like other ancient papal institutions, trampled it
under their feet and rejected it.</p>

<p>From said ancient book, which is ascribed to Reinerius, the
Waldenses are charged with various other things respecting
their faith; of which, in the ninth and tenth charge, the
following is said with reference to baptism <i>(page 629, art.
9), "As</i> regards baptism, some (he means the Waldenses) err,
saying: 'Infants are not saved by baptism, Mark <i>16:16.</i>
But he that believes and is baptized, shall be saved; but the
child does not believe, and, hence, is not saved (by baptism).'
Thereupon the priest Reinerius replies: 'The child is baptized
upon the faith of the parents;' ergo."</p>

<p><i>Art. 10</i> confirms the preceding; only it treats also
of something more, namely, of the imposition of hands, which
was customarily done among the Waldenses, at baptism, to the
adult candidates. They also reprove therein the practice which
the priests had, of interrogating the sponsors who would come
with children to baptism, in an unknown tongue, to which the
sponsors then replied, without knowing, however, what they had
been asked. This the Waldenses also take as a reason for
rejecting infant baptism and the pedobaptistic superstitions.
However, to this, said Reinerius replies, "Suffer little
children to come unto me." Matt. 19.</p>

<p><i>On page 733, de Centuria XIII, cap. 5, fol. 216, 217,</i>
it is stated from Cesarius, that the Waldenses and Albigenses
rejected baptism and said that baptism possessed no virtue and
was of no use; which they understood of infant baptism, which
is administered without doctrine and faith; for otherwise the
Waldenses esteemed the baptism of Christ, which is administered
according to his ordinance, very highly.</p>

<p>P. J. Twisck, beginning to write of the Waldenses for the
year 1100, calls them by the name of <i>Brethren,</i> and says
that they opposed infant baptism. His words are these, "It is
evident from the writers, that in these times and shortly
after, there existed the Waldensian or Albigensian Brethren,
who opposed the papal errors and infant baptism." <i>Chron..
baae 423, col. 1.</i></p>

</div><div id="281"> 

<p>This is confirmed by the writers of the <i>Introduction to
the Martyrs' Mirror, page 50, eol. 1,</i> who say, With, or
from, Baronius, that among other things they held that infant
baptism is not necessary to salvation.</p>

<p>We finally come to the testimony of jean Paul Perrin
Lionnoys, who, according to the translation of B. Lydius, also
confirms the foregoing, although the translator, Lydius, as
well as J. M. V., after the manner of pedobaptists has
endeavored to give said belief of the Waldenses a different
appearance; however, it will appear sufficiently from the
matter itself, who has been the more honest, the author or the
translator. We will therefore enter upon our work and commit
this to the judgment of the reader.</p>

<p>In the third chapter of the first book of the His<i>tory of
the Waldenses,</i> various things of which the papists accused
the Waldenses are related, some of which were true, and some
false. Among them, mention is made of their views against
infant baptism, which is expressed in these words, "The fourth
calumny was, that they rejected infant baptism." <i>Lib. 1,
part 1, Hist. Waldenses, cap. 3, page 6,</i> col. 1, from
<i>St. Bernh., Horn. 66 on Cant.</i></p>

<p>These things, B. Lydius <i>(page 10)</i> endeavors to
refute, as though the Waldenses deferred the baptism of their
children, not in consequence of their belief, but from
necessity through want of teachers; in which he agrees with his
colleague, Abraham Mellinus, preacher of the Calvinists, in St.
Anthony's Polder; who, remarking that various writers testify
that the Waldenses left their children unbaptized, says
<i>(Hist. Mart. 435, col. 3)</i>, "That the children of the Waldenses often got to be rather
old, before they could receive baptism, was not a voluntary
matter on their part, but was owing to the lack of teachers;
for the harvest among them was great, but the laborers few, who
could administer the sacraments, especially baptism, which they
held in great esteem. Hence, as their ministers were frequently
scattered far and wide, through the violence of persecution, or
had gone into other countries to preach, they were often
compelled to postpone the baptism of their children, .and thus
it happened that their children not seldom got to be almost of
age, before they could obtain baptism." Thus far, A.
Mellinus.</p>

<p>But who does not see, that this is only a fabrication, yea,
an artifice, by which not only Lydius, but also Mellinus, both
strong Calvinists, seek to force it upon the Waldenses that
they omitted infant baptism not as a matter of faith, but of
necessity. For, that they needed not to omit it from necessity,
or through want of teachers who administered baptism, if,
otherwise they had held infant baptism to be right, appears
from various authors; for they had their churches, which could
not well be without teachers, not only in kingdoms,
principalities, earldoms, and provinces, but even in nearly
every city, as we shall show more, fully;in the proper place.
Who, then, can believe, that hey from necessity, through want
of teachers, left their children unbaptized, yea, suffered them
to grow up until they became of age, without baptism?</p>

<p>It is evident, therefore, that they did not leave their
children unbaptized from necessity or through want of teachers,
but because of their belief; as holding that baptism without
faith could not conduce to salvation, as is manifest from the
confessions which they professed in those times already. Thus
both B. Lydius and A. Mellinus have committed no small blunder,
in endeavoring to force infant baptism upon the Waldenses, of
which they apparently never thought in such a light, and to
deprive them of baptism upon faith, which they had confessed so
many times.</p>

<p>But, as the compass, though its point be turned East, West,
or South, ultimately returns to North; so it is also with the
truth: though she be forced from her proper place, she will
eventually return to it. This is the case here; for, said
translator, who first intended to prove, that the Waldenses
administered baptism not only upon faith, but also without
faith, to infants, states in another place, that it was always
administered with faith and repentance. For, what else is
indicated by the words, that they received the sacraments (that
is, not only the Supper, but also baptism) with.faith and
repentance, and this invariably? as is stated in the first book
of the third part of the <i>History of the Waldenses, cap. 9,
page 138, col. 1, art. 8.</i></p>

<p>If, then, not only the second, but also the first sacrament,
as it is called, namely baptism, is received with faith and
repentance, it cannot be said that it was administered to
infants, seeing these have neither knowledge nor ability either
to believe, or to manifest repentance, and, hence, lack the
whole foundation upon which baptism was administered by the
Waldenses.</p>

<p>In the tract of the Waldenses, as to which are the works of
antichrist, several reproaches against the pope of Rome and the
Roman church are treated of; among other things, it is said,
after the second article has been treated, "The third work of
antichrist consists in this, that he ascribes the renewing of
the Holy Ghost to the external, dead faith (namely, to the
creed which the sponsors used to recite at baptism, as from the
mouth of the children), and that he baptizes the children in
that faith, pretending that by it baptism and rezeneration must
be obtained." <i>History of the Waldenses,</i> 3d <i>book,</i>
3d <i>part. Tract aqainst Antichrist, Art. 3, page 162, eol. 1,
page</i> 163, col. 2.</p>

<p>In another place there is quoted, from Reinerius, this
accusation against the Waldenses, "They also censure many things
in the (papal) sacraments, and say that the baptism of infants
is of no avail to them." B. <i>Lydius, Tractaet van de Kerke,
page</i> 86, col. 1.</p>

<p>Having, then, sufficiently proved, that the true Waldenses
were not only called Anabaptists, but that they also actually
reiected infant baptism. we</p>

</div><div id="282"> 

<p>will proceed to other articles of their doctrine, which they
had in common with the present Baptists.*</p>

<br /><cite>*"Doopsgesinde", German, Taufsgesinde". But in
order to treat this subject in a proper manner, we will here
add what they, as regards this matter, believed and, themselves
or in the name of others, indicated.</cite> 

 
 <h1>THE BELIEF OF THE ANCIENT WALDENSES RESPECTING THE OFFICE OF THE SECULAR AUTHORITY </h1>

<p>It is altogether manifest, that the true Waldenses, in their
beginning as well as in their progress, did not accept of
secular power and authority, but forsook, yea, fled from it.
This appears, in the first place, from those who were the
originators, or at least, no insignificant representatives of
their religion, namely, Peter Waldo and John of Lyons, both of
them influential and very wealthy men, who voluntarily
abandoned their riches, and taught their followers to do
likewise-to resign not only authority, but also the means which
furnished occasion thereto, and to be content with such things
as might be needful to them for a modest and sober manner of
life. For this reason they were called not only Waldenses, but
also Poor Men of Lyons. See <i>Bapt. Hist., page 599. H. Mont.,
page 85.</i></p>

<p>To this belongs also, that, though their number was great,
they suffered themselves to be martyred like sheep for the
slaughter, after their expulsion from Lyons, to which they had
not offered the least resistance; concerning which, ancient
history affords an abundant evidence, and which, God granting
us time, we shall notice more fully in the proper place.</p>

<p>As regards what the Waldenses, long after they had left
Lyons, believed and taught with reference to this point, it is
expressed in one of their articles as follows, "But He (Christ)
also exercised no temporal jurisdiction or authority, in the
state of His humiliation." <i>Abr. Mell., 2d book, fol. 446,
cot. 2.</i></p>

<p>By these words the Waldenses indicate that even as Christ
exercised no temporal authority in the state of Hns
humiliation, so His followers also, here, ought not to exercise
any such authority, but that they themselves should be subject
to secular authorities, as the whole article shows, both in the
preceding and in the following words.</p>

<p>In another article they say, that they are truly poor in
spirit, and, for righteousness and faith's sake do not exercise
authority, but suffer persecution. <i>Bapt. Hist., page</i>
617, in the fourth error of their first article, as the
Romanists call it.</p>

<h2>THE VIEWS OF THE ANCIENT WALDENSES AGAINST WAR</h2> 

<p>Their departure from Lyons, their wandering about in foreign
countries and cities, their innocent and patient suffering,
their steadfastness unto death, and all this without any
resistance, retaliation, or self-defense, sufficiently
indicated the faith they had, and by what spirit they were
actuated.</p>

<p>In an old book of parchment, supposed to have been written
three hundred years ago, by a certain priest called Reinerius,
various matters are alleged as charges against the Waldenses,
which he, in a certain place, comprises in three articles, each
of which he then divides into sections. In the tenth section he
says,"That the pope and all the bishops are murderers, because
of the war that they carry on." <i>Bapt. Hist., page</i> 617.
<i>B. Lydius, 3. Tract of the Faith of the Waldenses, page 85,
cot. 1, Art. 10.</i></p>

<p>This he gives as an article of the faith of the Waldenses,
calling it, however, an error or heresy; but how can he, who
has not learned otherwise, speak differently?</p>

<p>Jean Paul Perrin Lionnoys, or his translator, charges the
Waldenses also with the following, which accords well with the
preceding, "Seventhly, (he says) that they (the Waldenses)
maintained, that the pope commits mortal sin, when he sends
forth to make war upon the Turks; and that they likewise commit
mortal sin, who obey him in waging war against the heretics."
<i>History of the Waldenses, 1st part, 1st book, cap. 3,
page</i> 6, <i>cot. 1.</i></p>

<p>Who cannot see, that this article of the Waldenses opposes
war and everything that can be called warfare? yea, in such a
manner, that it does not admit of it at all.</p>

<p>For, if one should look for a just cause to wage war, how
could he find one more just, than against the Turks? howbeit,
it is unjust against all men: but we speak by way of
comparison. How could one find greater reason to wage war, than
against those whom he considers heretics? for of such it was
customary to say that they were worse than murderers, seeing
murderers kill only the body, but they, it was said, souls.
Nevertheless, the Waldenses reproved the pope for such action,
yea, declared, that he committed mortal sin thereby; as well as
those who allowed themselves to be used as instruments by the
pope for this purpose.</p>

<p>What is added by the translator <i>(lib. 1, part 1, Hist.
Wald., cap. 4, page</i> 11), for explanation, which however,
serves much more to obscuration, we pass by, as unworthy of
consideration and which will fall of its own accord.</p>

<p>Yea, it seems, that the Waldenses not only held that they
themselves might not wage war or kill any one, but that they
also denied the right of secular authorities who wished to be
called Christians, to kill, even if the persons whom they
should put to death were malefactors. Concerning this, we find
in P. <i>J. Turisck's Chronijk,</i> that the"Poor
Men,""Insabbathi," or"Waldenses," taught, that no judge who
would be a ,Christian, might put to death any one, not even a
malefactor. <i>Chron., page 534, cot.</i> 2, and <i>page 535,
cot.</i> 1, from <i>Chron. Seb. Fr., fol. 202, and Enca
Sylvio.</i></p>

</div><div id="283"> 

<p>Moreover, in the account of Gabriel Prateolus and Guilielmo
Reginaldus, who have noted the accusations regarding the
doctrine of the Waldenses, also this charge is found against
them: <i>Art. 17.</i> "They (the Waldenses) teach that no judge
may condemn anyone to any punishment; to which end they adduce
that it is written: 'Judge not, that ye be not judged."' <i>A.
Mell. 2d book, fol. 434, cot. 1, Eleneh. Haeres. Tit. Paup. de
Lugd. Calvin Turcismi., lib. 2, cap. 5.</i></p>

<p>Touching what G. Prateolus and G. Reginaldus add by way of
accusation, we let them answer for it. It suffices us that in
this they came very near the truth; but they went too far in
what the Waldenses understood with regard to capital
punishment, namely, that authorities may punish no one with
death; this they applied to every kind of punishment, as though
the Waldenses had censured the authorities for punishing any
one, even a great offender, in any wise; which we are not aware
that the Waldenses ever opposed in any formal article, unless
some particular one among them held such views.</p>

<p>In the meantime it appears, from the last as well as from
the preceding testimonies, how exceedingly fearful these people
were in the matter of punishing any one with death; so that
they not only desired to be clear from it themselves, but also
spoke against the same in the secular authorities. Still more
did they reprove open warfare, in which not only a few, but
very many are killed, and this for trifling reasons. This being
true, we will proceed to other points of their faith, which
they had in common with the Baptists.</p>

<p>NOTE.-That the Albigenses also, who were one with the
Waldenses, were defenseless, peaceable, and meek people, living
in quiet under certain papistic authorities, who protected
them. See, among others, <i>Introduction, page 50, cot. 2, and
page 51, cot. 1, from Baron. in Annal.</i></p>

<h2>THE VIEWS OF THE ANCIENT WALDENSES AGAINST THE SWEARING OF OATHS</h2> 

<p>In regard to this point the Waldenses were of the same
opinion with us, teaching that the fathers of the Old Testament
were permitted, when necessity required it, to swear an oath,
in or by the name of the Lord; but that for Christians it is
quite unlawful, according to the teaching of.our Saviour, who
says, "Ye have heard that it hath been said by them of old time,
Thou shalt not forswear thyself, but shalt perform unto the
Lord thine oaths: but I say unto you, Swear not at all" (Matt.
<i>5:33, 34).</i></p>

<p>In the first book of the first part of the History of the
Waldenses, written by jean Paul Perrin Lionnoys, and translated
by J. M. h., <i>chap. 3, page 6, cot. 1,</i> the following
point, among others, is adduced as an accusation against the
Waldenses"The sixth (tenet) which they (the Waldenses)
maintained, was, that men should not swear on any account."
<i>From Albert de Capit. and Reiner</i>.</p>

<p class="c8">Also, P. 1. Twisck, Chron., page 534, cot. 2,
page 535, cot. 1.</p>

<p>How the compiler of these things seeks to explain said
matter, we here pass over, as this is not the proper place to
speak of it. But when necessary, we shall consider it our duty
to give an account of it.</p>

<p>Far more pertinent and important, however, is that which is
recorded in <i>Bapt. Hist., page 624,</i> where it is stated
that in regard to the swearing of oaths they believed thus:
<i>"Art. 9.</i> That every oath is a mortal sin; saying:
<i>Swear not at all; but let your communication be, Yea, that
is yea; Nay, that is nary."</i> Extracted from an old book of
parchment, ascribed to Reinerius. <i>Also, A. Mell., Zd book,
fol. 432, cot. 4:</i></p>

<p>In the articles ascribed by G. Prateolus and G. Reginaldus
to the Waldenses, as having constituted their faith, mention is
made of their views in regard to the swearing of oaths,
concerning which, the eighteenth article contains the
following: They (the Waldenses) say that all manner of swearing
is unlawful for Christians, so that it is nowhere lawful to
swear, not even before the judge, when he constrains one
thereto, to testify to the truth." <i>A. Mell., 2d book, fol.
434, cot. 1. Eleneh. Haeres. Calv. Turcism., lib. 2, cap.
5.</i></p>

<p>It is true, Mellinus, after the manner of the Calvinists,'of
whom he was a leader, endeavors to explain, as it were, this
article of the Waldenses, as though thereby they did not
prohibit all swearing of oaths, but only frivolous swearing.
His words are these, "The eighteenth article has reference only
to unjust and perjurious swearing, as said author owns, (he
means the author who charges them with those articles) saying:
'The occasion which led them into this belief, was the fact
that they so often and continually heard the people swear for
trifling reasons, and because thereby one easily falls into
perjury."'</p>

<p>But hear what he further says, as he adds a jeering
comparison, saying, "That the heretics, who never swear, are
like the devil, of whom we do not read that he ever swore."
Page 434, cot. 3.</p>

<p>I pray thee, beloved reader, see now, by what author
Mellinus seeks to establish his case. It is true, he first
quotes this author when presenting the articles of the
Waldenses, and this for the reason that the latter has
presented them in such a manner that they in every part
militate against the Roman church; but now, seeing that said
author has presented the article respecting the swearing of
oaths (in which the Waldenses deny all swearing) in such a way
that it militates against the Calvinistic church, he begins, in
order to make the matter doubtful, and to deprive the Waldenses
of the article relative to nonswearing, to quote from said
author again, and this, in mocking and impious language.</p>

<p>But becoming more discreet, he commences to extol that which
is expressed in the eighteenth article_ relative to the
swearinv of the Waldenses,</p>

</div><div id="284"> 

<p>above the manner of the papists, saying, "But they (the
Waldenses) who have learned from Christ, 'Let your
communication be, Yea, yea; Nay, nay; for whatsoever is more
than these cometh of evil' (Matt. <i>5:37), will</i> judge,
that the papists, among whom the practice of daily swearing so
frivolously is in vogue, are more like that Evil One, that is,
the devil, than the Waldenses, who guarding against lying and
swearing, and in their daily conversation, are wont to say
only, Yea, yea; Nay, na;; as this same writer acknowledges in
regard to them. They guard against backbiting, foul words,
lying, and swearing, and, as another inquisitor has said</p>

<p>They are prudent in their words, avoid all lying and
swearing; also, they teach to avoid all lying, backbiting, and
swearing." A. <i>Mell., Zd book, fol. 434, cot. 3,</i> from
<i>Frehed. Hist. Bohem., page 232.</i></p>

<p>With these and like passages from the preceding authors,
Mellinus has sought to embellish the Waldenses, to indicate,
that they were pious, upright and moral people; but in the
meantime he forgot himself, not once thinking that thereby he
abundantly establishes that which in other places he endeavors
to refute, namely, <i>that the Waldenses rejected all swearing
of oaths.</i></p>

<p>Here we see how excellent truth is, that it cannot remain
hid, but is brought to light even by its opponents, either
unintentionally or otherwise. I should here leave this subject,
but as Mellinus has helped me on the way to show him his
perverted zeal, I find it necessary to enter more deeply into
the matter. This good, but perversely zealous man, having put
all his arguments aside, plainly relates, from an old papistic
work of three hundred years ago, that the Waldenses believed
all oaths to be mortal sins; yea, that they considered him who
would compel another to swear, worse than a murderer. A.
<i>Mell. 2d book, fol. 432, cot. 4,</i> from <i>Illyrie.
Catal., lib. 15. Tit. Waldens.</i> See also, <i>Conferedit
Freher. in Hist. Bohem. and Gretser. Sweluc. Tudens.</i></p>

<p>Of such and similar passages the writers who present the
views of the Waldenses, are full to overflowing, so that it is
as clear as the sun, that these people rejected the swearing of
oaths and everything that resembled it, even to the saying of
the word, <i>Verily,</i> or <i>Certainly,</i> etc.; of which
the aforesaid writer also makes mention, saying, "They (the
Waldenses) do not say to one another, <i>Verily, Certainly, or
the like."* Fol. 432, cot. 4.</i></p>

<p>All this was done from fear of swearing in any wise, because
the Lord had so expressly said, <i>"Swear not at all."</i>
Matt. <i>5:34;</i> hence, they avoided all manners which bore
any resemblance to the swearing of oaths.</p>

<p>But, lest any should think that the Albigenses, who were one
people with the Waldenses (though others distinguished between
them), differed from them in their views, belief, and practice
as regards</p>

<br /><cite>* P. J. Twisck, in his Chronijk, shows expressly
that the Waldenses would not swear, etc.-Book 14, page 743,
col. 2. from Henr. Roh fol 27 his point, let him read what is
noted in the <i>Martyrs' Mirror, edition of 1631, page 51, cot.
2;</i> where it is stated, from <i>Baronius, for A. D. 1178,
nun. 3, 4:</i> "That many of the Albigenses, from fear of severe
punishment, feigned return to the Roman church; but when an
oath was demanded of them they refused to swear; hence they
were pronounced heretics and solemnly, with burning tapers,
excommunicated, with an injunction to ail Catholics, to shun
them; and to all (Romanistic ) princes, to expel them from
their dominions.</cite> 

<h2>OF THE VIEWS OF THE WALDENSES AGAINST NEARLY ALL ARTICLES OF THE ROMAN CHURCH</h2> 

<p>Reinerius, who has written against the Waldenses, gives the
following testimony respecting them, as the Jesuits confess in
their own print.</p>

<p><i>Cap. 2, Ingolstadt edition, page 54.</i> "Among all the
sects that ever were and still are, there is none more
pernicious for the church than the sect of the Lyonists (thus
he calls the Waldenses), and this for three reasons.</p>

<p><i>"Firstly,</i> because it is the most ancient; for. some
say that it has existed from the time of Sylvester; others say,
from the time of the apostles.</p>

<p><i>"Secondly,</i> because it is more general (that is, more
widely diffused) than other sects; for there is no country
where this sect is not found.</p>

<p><i>"Thirdly,</i> because, whereas all other sects, by their
abominable blasphemies against God, cause those who hear them,
to loathe their belief, this sect, on the other hand, has a
great semblance of godliness, because they lead a godly life
before men, have a true belief in all things concerning God,
and hold correct views in regard to all the twelve articles of
the faith; only they condemn the Roman church and the clergy,
in which the unlearned too readily credit them."</p>

<p>In the fifth chapter he says that their doctrine can be
brought under these three heads: 1. Invectives against the
Roman church and her institutions. 2. Errors against the
sacraments and the saints. 3. Rejection of all church
usages.</p>

<p>He then specifies their doctrine in the following manner</p>

<p>1. That the Roman church is not the church of Christ, but
the church of malediction; and that she decayed in the time of
Sylvester, when the poison of temporal riches insinuated
itself.</p>

<p>2. That all sins and defects are in the Roman church, and
that they (the Waldenses) alone live holily.</p>

<p>3. That almost no one observes the doctrine of the holy
Gospel, except they( the Waldenses).</p>

<p>4. That they, in truth, are poor in spirit, and suffer
persecution for righteousness and faith's sake.</p>

<p>5. That they are the church of Jesus Christ.</p>

<p>6. That the Roman church is the whore described in John's
Revelation.</p>

</div><div id="285"> 

<p>7. That they condemn all the statutes of the (Roman) church,
because of their multiplicity and laboriousness.</p>

<p><i>8.</i> That the pope is the head of all errors.</p>

<p>9. That the prelates are scribes, and the religions, or
members of orders, Pharisees.</p>

<p>10. That the popes and bishops, with respect to the wars
they carry on, are murderers. (This article is treated of in
another place.) .</p>

<p>11. That God alone is to be obeyed, and not the
prelates.</p>

<p><i>12.</i> That one is not greater than another (before the
Lord), but that all are brethren. Matt. <i>23.</i></p>

<p><i>13.</i> That no one may bow his knees before the priests;
because the angel said to John-,"See thou do it not: for I am
thy fellow servant." Rev. <i>22:9.</i></p>

<p><i>14.</i> That men should not give tithes (to the papistic
clergy), because it was not customary formerly to give tithes
to the church.</p>

<p><i>15.</i> That the clergy ought not to have property of
their own; because it is written,"The priests, the Levites, and
all the tribe of Levi, shall have no part nor inheritance with
Israel . . . the Lord is their inheritance, as he bath said
unto them." Deut. <i>18.</i></p>

<p>16. That the inmates of monasteries ought not to have
prebends.</p>

<p>17. That bishops are not entitled to the regalia; these
being things which are the prerogative of kings and rulers.</p>

<p><i>18.</i> That no churches and monasteries ought to be
founded and endowed.</p>

<p>19. That wills ought not to be drawn up by ecclesiastical
persons.</p>

<p><i>20.</i> They reject the clergy, on account of their
idleness, and because they do not labor with their hands, as
the apostles did.</p>

<p><i>21.</i> They reject the names, pope and bishop.</p>

<p><i>22.</i> They will not admit any one should be compelled
to the faith.</p>

<p><i>23.</i> They reject all ecclesiastical (papistic)
offices, and pay little regard to ecclesiastical
privileges.</p>

<p><i>24.</i> They do not admit, that churches and
ecclesiastical persons should be exempt from the power and
punishment of the secular authorities, for, under that cover of
liberty the clergy used to do as they pleased.</p>

<p><i>25.</i> They hold in contempt councils, synods, and all
(papistic) ecclesiastical assemblies.</p>

<p>26. They say, that all human rules respecting persons in
orders, are Pharisaical institutions:</p>

<p>These and various other articles respecting the belief of
the Waldenses, all directed against the pope, the clergy, sand
the whole Roman church, were found in an old parchment written
three hundred years ago, and ascribed to Reinerius. It was
afterwards followed by various authors. See <i>Balth. Lyd. 3.
Tract of the Wnldens:, page 84, cot,</i> 1, and <i>page! 85,
cots. 1, 2. A. Mell., 2d book, fol. 430, cod. 4, fol. 431,
cots. 1-4. Bapt. Hist., pages 616,</i> 617, 618. P. 1.
<i>Tzeisck, Chron., page 451, cot. 2.</i> At-n Nicol Evmeric..
printed at Rome. A. D. <i>1585.</i></p>

<h2>THE CONFESSIONS OF THE WALDENSES, OR THEIR OWN CRE'EDS</h2> 

<p>Since the Waldenses were very ancient, and were spread over
very many parts of the world, it came that they, from time to
time were compelled, by the demand of those with and among whom
they lived, to give an account of their faith; hence it is,
that different creeds of the Waldenses were made and are still
extant. However, it is not our intention, to relate them all,
but simply to present to you one or two, which have been
celebrated from ancient times, and are judged to be of the
best.</p>

<p>Jean Paul Perrin Lionnoys, in his <i>History of the
Waldenses,</i> translated from the French into Dutch, by J. M.
V., <i>first part, first book, page 43,</i> makes mention of a
certain confession of the Waldenses, in which they speak of
various matters of faith, particularly of the holy Scriptures.
It reads thus</p>

<p><i>Article I.</i> We believe and hold fast all that is
contained in the twelve articles of the Apostolic Creed; and
regard as error all that differs therefrom, and does not agree
with said twelve articles.</p>

<p><i>Article II.</i> We believe that there is one .God, the
Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost.</p>

<p><i>Article III.</i> We confess and hold as holy canonical
Scriptures, the books of the Holy Bible, namely these: The five
books of Moses, called Genesis, Exodus, Leviticus, Numbers,
Deuteronomy. The books of Joshua, Judges, Ruth, The historical
books, I Samuel, II Samuel, I Kings, II Kings, I Chronicles, II
Chronicles, Ezra, Nehemiah, Esther. The didactic books, job,
Psalms, Proverbs, Ecclesiastes, The Song of Solomon. The
greater prophecies of Isaiah, Jeremiah, Ezekiel, Daniel. The
lesser prophets, Hosea, Joel, Amos, Obadiah, Jonah, Micah,
Nahum, Hhhbakkuk, Zephaniah, Haggai, Zechariah, Malachi.</p>

<p>Then follow the books of the Apocrypha, which were not
received by the Hebrews; hence we read them, as Jerome says, in
the preface to the, Proverbs, for the edification of the
people, but not for the purpose of confirming church doctrines.
They are: I Esdras, II Esdras, Tobit, Judith, Wisdom;
Ecclesiasticus, or Jesus Sirach; Baruch, with the letter of
Jeremiah; the additions to the book of Esther, from the tenth
chapter to the end; the Song of the Three Men in the Fiery
Furnace; the History of Susanna; of the Dragon at Babel; the
three books of the Maccabees.</p>

<p>Then follow the books of the New Testament. The Gospels, by
Matthew, Mark, Luke, John. The Acts of the Apostles. The
epistles of Paul, Romans, I Corinthians, II Corinthians,
Galatians, Ephesians, Philippians, Colossians, I Thessalonians,
II Thessalonians, I Timothy, II Timothy, Titus, Philemon,
Hebrews, I Peter, II Peter, I John, II John. (How it comes that
III John is not mentioned, we do not know). The epistle of
Jude, the Revelation of John.</p>

<p>Article IV. The afore-mentioned books teach this: That there
is one God, who is omnipotent,</p>

</div><div id="286"> 

<p>allwise, and alone good, who created all things according to
His goodness; for He created Adam after His image and likeness;
but that, through the envy of the devil and the disobedience of
Adam, sin came into the world, and that we are sinners in and
through Adam.</p>

<p><i>Article V.</i> That Christ was promised to the fathers,
who received the law, that by it they might know their sin,
unrighteousness and unfitness, and long for the coming of
Christ; to which end He atoned for sin and Himself fulfilled
the law.</p>

<p><i>Article VI.</i> That Christ was born at the time
appointed by His Father; namely, when all manner of wickedness
abounded; and this not for the good works' sake, for they were
all sinners; but to show us grace and mercy, as being the true
and faithful one.</p>

<p><i>Article VII.</i> That Christ is our Way, Truth, Peace,
Righteousness, Shepherd, Advocate, Sacrifice, and High Priest;
who died for the salvation of them that believe, and was raised
for our justification.</p>

<p><i>Article VIII.</i> And, consequently, we maintain, that
there is no other mediator and advocate with God the Father,
than Jesus Christ. But as regards the virgin Mary, we hold,
that she was holy, humble, and full of grace; likewise we
believe of all the other saints, that they . . wait for the
resurrection of their bodies in the day of judgment.</p>

<p><i>Article IX.</i> We believe that after this life there are
but two places; the one for the blessed, the other for the
damned; and utterly deny purgatory, which is a dream and
invention of antichrist against truth.</p>

<p><i>Article X.</i> We have likewise always believed, that all
human inventions are an unspeakable abomination before God;
such as feast days, vigils of the saints, the so-called holy
water, abstaining from flesh on certain days, and like things,
especially masses.</p>

<p><i>Article Xl.</i> We abhor all human inventions, as
proceeding from antichrist, and which carry with them
destruction, and prevent the freedom of the spirit.</p>

<p><i>Article X11.</i> We believe that the sacraments are signs
of holy things, or visible representations of invisible grace;
and deem it well, that believers should from time to time use
these visible signs or representations, when it is possible for
them to do so; nevertheless, we also believe and hold, that
said believers can be saved, though they do not receive these
signs; that is, when they have no place or opportunity where to
receive or use them.</p>

<p><i>Article X111.</i> We have never confessed that there is
any other sacrament than baptism and the Supper.</p>

<p><i>Article XIV.</i> We must honor the secular authorities
with subjection, obedience, willingness, and taxes.</p>

<p class="c8">The above fourteen articles are extracted from
the book called by the Waldenses,"The Spiritual Almanac," and
from the"Memoirs of George Morel." Also,"Hut. of the Waldens.,"
1st part, 1st book, cap. 12, pages 43-48.</p>

<p>As regards said articles, they are wholesome and good, if
observed in simplicity; hence we will leave them and proceed to
another confession, of said Waldenses and Albigenses, drawn up
by those of Merindol and Cabriere, and sent to the king of
France. The same was publicly read, as A. Mellinus informs us,
in the King's Parliament at Paris, and its contents are, word
for word, as follows.</p>

<h2>CONFESSION OF THE WALDENSES AND ALBIGENSES, DRAWN UP BY THOSE OF MERINDOL AND CABRIERE, AND SENT TO THE KING OF FRANCE</h2> 

<p>I. We believe that there is but one God, who is a Spirit,
and the Creator of all things, the Father of all, over and
through or in all, in us all; who is to be worshiped in spirit
and in truth; to whom alone we look, as the Giver of life,
raiment and food, as well as of health and sickness, prosperity
and adversity; Him we love as the author of all good, and fear
Him as the discerner of our hearts.</p>

<p>II. We believe, that Jesus Christ is the Son and the image
of the Father, in whom dwells all the fullness of the Godhead;
by whom we know the Father; who is our Mediator and Advocate;
and there is no other name under heaven given unto men, whereby
we may be saved. In His name alone we worship the Father, and
pour out no prayers before God, save those contained in the
holy Scriptures, or which fully agree with the sense of the
same.</p>

<p>III. We believe, that we have the Comforter. the Holy Ghost,
who proceeds from the Father and the Son; by whose inspiration
we pray, and through whose effectual operation we are
regenerated. This Holy Ghost operates in us all good works, and
by Him we are led into all truth.</p>

<p>IV. We believe in a holy church, the congregation of all the
elect (believers) of God, from the foundation (or beginning) of
the world unto the end; the head of this church is our Lord
Jesus Christ. This Church is governed by the Word of God, and
led by the Holy Ghost. All true Christians are bound to live in
her; for she prays without ceasing for all, being acceptable to
God, who is her refuge, and out of which church there is no
salvation.</p>

<p>V. It is an established rule with us, that the ministers of
the church, namely, the bishops and the pastors, must be
blameless in manner and doctrine; and if not, that they must be
removed, and others put in their stead, who do better fill
their place and office. No one takes unto himself this honor,
unless he is called of God, like Aaron; feeding the flock of
God, not greedy of filthy lucre, nor lording it over his
church; but, with a willing</p>

</div><div id="287"> 

<p>mind, setting a good example to the godly, in word,
intercourse, love, faith, and purity.</p>

<p>VI. We believe, that kings, princes, and magistrates are
ordained by the Lord as His ministers, to whom obedience ought
to be rendered; for they bear the sword, to protect the
innocent, and punish the evil; hence we are in duty bound to
show them all proper honor, and to pay tribute: and no one can
evade this subjection, if he would be called a Christian,
according to the example of our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ,
for He paid tribute; but exercised no temporal jurisdiction or
dominion, drawing the sword of the heavenly word in the state
of His humiliation.</p>

<p>The last clause is translated by 1. M. V., in <i>Hist.
Wald.,</i> thus: Who Himself would pay tribute, but was not
willing to accept of worldly dominion.</p>

<p>VII. We believe, that the water in the sacrament of baptism
is an external, visible sign, representing to us that which the
power of God works within us, namely, the renewing of the
Spirit, and the mortifying of our flesh in Christ Jesus, by
whom we also become members of the holy church; in which church
we show forth the confession of our faith, and the reformation
of our life.</p>

<p>VIII. We believe, that the holy sacrament of the communion,
or of the Supper of our Lord Jesus Christ, is a holy memorial
and, a thanksgiving for the benefits bestowed upon us through
the death of Christ; which we all ought to observe and
celebrate in the congregation of the godly, in faith, love, and
self-examination; and that in thus receiving the bread and the
cup, we also become partakers of the body and blood of Christ,
as we are taught in the holy Scriptures.</p>

<p>IX. We confess, that marriage is good, honorable and holy,
yea, instituted by God Himself, and that therefore no one ought
to be prohibited from marrying, unless the Word of God
intervene.</p>

<p>X. We believe, that the godly and God-fearing ought to
conduct themselves praiseworthily before God, keeping
themselves engaged in good works, which God has ordained that
they should walk therein; these works are love, joy, peace,
longsuffering, kindness, piety, modesty, temperance, and other
good works commanded in the Scriptures.</p>

<p>XI. On the other hand, we confess, that we must beware of
false prophets, whose aim is, to draw the people away from the
religious worship which we owe to the Lord our God alone, and
to cause them to adhere to the creatures, and put one's
confidence in them; to neglect the good works commanded us in
the holy Scriptures, and to follow the fables of men.</p>

<p>XII. We hold the Old and the New Testament as the rule of
our faith, and follow the Symbol or Creed of the Apostles. If
any one be found who says that we confess another doctrine, we
shall show, if permitted to do it legally before the regular
judges, that he is greatly in error and deceives others.</p>

<p class="c8">The above Confession of the Waldenses and
Albigenses is taken from. Carolus du Moulin's book of the
Monarchy of the French, p. 65. A. Mell., 2d book, fol. 446,
col. 1, 2, 3, from Joh. Crespin. Acta Mart., lib. 3. Lancelot
du Voisin Poplin. Poplinerii Hist. Franc., lib. 1, edition
1585, fol. 26. Joach. Camer. Hist. Narrat., p. 565. To be found
in Car. Molin's book, De Manarchia Francorum, in the third
volume of his works, edition Paris, A. D. 1612, part 2, pp.
578, 579, 616, 617. Also, Jean Paul Perrin, Hist. of the Wald.,
1st part 1st book, cap. 13, cent;p. 49, 50.</p>

<p>Abraham Mellinus, having noted said confession, in his large
work, says, "Thus far extends the confession of faith of the
Waldenses and Albigenses, from whom those of Merindol and
Cabriere have sprung; which confession we have placed at the
close of the twelfth, and in the beginning of the thirteenth
century, in order to anticipate and refute all the shameful
doctrines which have been unjustly imputed, not only to the
Waldenses, as has appeared above, but, particularly, also to
the Albigenses, as though they had been Manicheans." <i>Hut.
Mart., 2d book, fol. 446, col. 4.</i></p>

<p>But who cannot see from the above confession of faith, that
it does not differ in substance from the confession of the
Baptists? notwithstanding A. Mellinus endeavors to draw them to
the Calvinists or so-called Reformed. For, to speak of but a
few points, just look at their confession in the article
concerning God; what do the Waldenses say there?"We believe,"
say they,"that there is but one God, who is a Spirit, the
Creator of all things, the Father of all, over and through or
in all things, in us all, who is to be worshiped in spirit and
in truth." Here certainly no mention is made of three
selfexistent, separate persons in the Divine Being. However, by
the confession of the Waldenses in this point, the truth of
Father, Son, and Holy Ghost constituting the one God, is not
excluded; neither is this done in any way by the Baptists.</p>

<p>Besides the preceding, consider the article concerning the
Son of God, or of the incarnation of Christ. What is the
confession of the Waldenses is this respect?"We believe," say
they,"that Jesus Christ is the Son and image of the Father, in
whom dwells all the fullness of the Godhead, by whom we know
the Father." Certainly, nothing is said here, that the eternal
Son of God took His whole humanity, consisting of body and
soul, from the substance of the virgin Mary, and that this
assumed humanity died for us, but that the true, eternal Son of
God remained alive, as the Calvinists say; but as the apostle
says, "He (the man Christ) is the image of the invisible God,"
Col. 1:15; and again, "In him dwelleth all the fullness of the Godhead bodily."
Col. 2:9, as is also declared in the confession of the
Anabaptists.</p>

<p>Further, observe the article of the Waldenses respecting the
office of authority."We confess," say they,"that kings,
princes, and magistrates are ordained by the Lord as His
ministers, unto whom</p>

</div><div id="288"> 

<p>obedience ought to be rendered." But what do they add by way
of explanation, that a Christian may fill such an office, as
the Calvinistic church says? Oh, no; but they say (that we must
submit to it) according to the example of our Lord and Saviour
Jesus Christ; for He paid tribute, but exercised no temporal
jurisdiction or dominion; drawing the sword of the heavenly
word in the state of His humiliation; even as also the
Anabaptists confess.</p>

<p>Continuing, notice their article respecting baptism."We
believe," say they,"that the water in the sacrament of baptism
is an external, visible sign, representing to us that which the
power of God works within us, namely, the renewing of the
spirit and the mortifying of our flesh in Christ Jesus, by whom
we also become members of the holy church, in which church we
show forth the confession of our faith and the reformation of
our life." Now, notice; is there a single word said in this
whole article, about infant baptism, which latter is
nevertheless so strenuously maintained at the present day, by
the Calvinistic church? Oh. no; but the contrary is
sufficiently expressed, when it is said, "That the water in the
sacrament of baptism is an external, visible sign, representing
to us that which the power of God works within us, namely, the
renewing." For, who does not know, that infants have no
knowledge of this external, visible sign? much less, that they
should understand, that said sign represents to them that which
the power of God should work within them, namely, the renewing?
And, to be brief, how can infants, who have never walked in the
old life, be sealed, by baptism, unto a new, life? In said
article it is also said,"That baptism signifies the mortifying
of the flesh." But how can children be reminded by baptism,
that they must mortify the flesh, who, before baptism, never
lived after the flesh? Hence it follows, that the Waldenses, in
this article, did not once, it appears, think of infant
baptism.</p>

<p>Then, A. Mellinus presents certain doctrinal points which,
for the most part unjustly, he says, were imputed, by their
adversaries, to the Albigenses, and consequently, also to the
Waldenses, since they were one people; they consisted of
twenty-eight articles, the first half, or first fourteen of
which, he promptly rejects, saying, after presenting
them, "These are the chief articles with which the Albigenses
are charged by the papists; the first fourteen have been
willfully fabricated, and falsely imputed to them, by their
adversaries (which we will not dispute); the other fourteen
they have, for the most part, in common with the Waldenses, as
well as with us."</p>

<p>But, beloved reader, what are the contents of these last
fourteen articles which A. Mellinus seems to admit so
unequivocally? First of all, the first article (the fifteenth
if we count the preceding ones), attracts our attention."They
(the Waldenses) overthrow," says their accuser,"all the
sacraments of the Roman Catholic church, and totally reject
holy baptism (that is, the baptism of infants, for at that time
nothing but infant baptism was known in the Roman church) as
useless and unnecessary; and say that the external water of
holy baptism differs in no respect from the water in the
rivers."</p>

<p>Coming to the article concerning the swearing of oaths,
which, reckoned with the preceding, is the twenty-sixth, it is
expressly stated there, "They teach that it is utterly unlawful
to swear." A. <i>Mell., same book, fol. 447, col. 1.</i></p>

<p>Here it is to be observed, that if these last articles,
respecting baptism and the swearing of oaths are justly imputed
to the Waldenses, which has previously been proved to be true,
and is also admitted here by A. Mellinus; whether those who
made this confession, can justly be reckoned with the
Calvinistic church, which, as regards said articles, has quite
a different confession; or whether they may be reckoned with
the church of the Anabaptists, who, as far as these articles
are concerned, agree with their confession; namely, that infant
baptism is useless, and that we ought not to swear in any
wise.</p>

<p>As regards the knowledge of God and Jesus Christ, the office
of authority, and other points, it has been said above, that
the Waldenses and Albigenses did not differ from, but much
rather, agreed with, the Anabaptistic Christians.</p>

 

 <h1>SOME MORAL PRECEPTS LEFT BY THE WALDENSES TO THE CHURCHES </h1>

<p>We turn again to jean Paul Perrin, whose testimony regarding
matters of the faith of the Waldenses has, from of old, been
very highly esteemed. Among other things, he gives an account
of the precepts which they left for the building up of a
virtuous life; in regard to which, the following is designed to
promote a virtuous and God-fearing deportment towards those
that are without. In the <i>History of the Waldenses and
Albigenses, 3d part, 1st book, 10th chapter, page</i> 153, we
read literally, in the Waldensian and in the English
<i>(Dutch,</i> the original says) tongue, as follows:</p>

<p><i>En qual modo le poble se de aver a aquilli guar son de f
ora?</i></p>

<p>"How shall our intercourse be with those that are
without?"</p>

<p class="c8">1. Non amar to mond.</p>

<p>We must not love the world.</p>

<p class="c8">2. Fugir la mala consortia.</p>

<p>We must shun evil company.</p>

<p class="c8">3. Si es possible aver paz cum fuit.</p>

<p>We must, if possible, live in peace with all men.</p>

<p class="c8">4. Non contendre en judici.</p>

<p>We must not go to law.</p>

<p class="c8">5. Non veniar si meseine.</p>

<p>We must not avenge ourselves.</p>

</div><div id="289"> 

<p class="c8">6. Amarr li ennemic.</p>

<p>We must love our enemies.</p>

<p class="c8">7. holer sustenir trabails, calomnias, menasas,
reprovance, vergognas, eriurias, &amp; totas generations de
tormens per la verita,</p>

<p>We must willingly bear labor, calumny, threats, rejection,
shame, injuries, and all kinds of torment, for the truth's
sake.</p>

<p class="c8">8. Possessir las arnuas in patientia.</p>

<p>We must possess our souls in patience.</p>

<p class="c8">9. Non amenar joug cum li non fidel.</p>

<p>We must not be yoked together with unbelievers.</p>

<p class="c8">10. Non communicar a las rnalas obras, &amp;
totalment a las, sabent idolatria, &amp; del servici sentent so
meseine, &amp; enaimi de las autes.</p>

<p>We must have no fellowship with evil works, especially with
such as savor of idolatry, and all services which tend in that
direction; and thus we are to judge of like matters.</p>

<p>In said tenth chapter some further rules of these people are
found, which have reference to the believers themselves, how
they must well govern their own lives and bodies. They read as
follows</p>

<p class="c8">Encar en qual maniera li fidel debian regir li
for corps</p>

<p>"Also, how believers are to govern their own bodies, or themselves."</p>

<p class="c8">1. Non servir a li desirier mortal de la
carn.</p>

<p>They shall not serve the deadly lusts of the flesh.</p>

<p class="c8">2. Gardar li for membres quilli non sign armas
d'iniquritas.</p>

<p>They shall keep their members that they do not become
instruments of wickedness.</p>

<p class="c8">3. Regir li for sentiment.</p>

<p>They shall govern well their thoughts.</p>

<p class="c8">4. Sot mettre la corps a l'espirit.</p>

<p>They shall keep the body in subjection to the spirit.</p>

<p class="c8">5. Morti Hear li membres.</p>

<p>They shall mortify their members.</p>

<p class="c8">6. Fugir la ocioseta.</p>

<p>They shall shun idleness.</p>

<p class="c8">7. Gardar sobrieta &amp; mesura en maniar &amp;
beavre, &amp; en parolas &amp; en las curas del mond.</p>

<p>They shall observe temperance and sobriety in eating and
drinking, as well as in their words, and in the cares of this
world.</p>

<p class="c8">8. Far obras de miseridia.</p>

<p>They shall practice works of mercy.</p>

<p class="c8">9. More per fe, &amp; per vita moral.</p>

<p>They shall live in faith and morality.</p>

<p class="c8">10. Combatre contra li desirier.</p>

<p>They shall fight against lusts.</p>

<p class="c8">11. Mortificar las obras de la carn.</p>

<p>They shall mortify the works of the flesh.</p>

<p class="c8">12. Istar en temp debit a la Religion.</p>

<p>They shall, at the proper time, attend divine worship.</p>

<p class="c8">13. Ensemp recordar la diving volunta.</p>

<p>They shall speak to one another of the will of God.</p>

<p class="c8">14. Examinar diligentament la conscientia.</p>

<p>They shall diligently examine their consciences.</p>

<p class="c8">15. Mundar &amp; esmendar, &amp; pacifecar l'
espirit.</p>

<p>They shall purify, improve, and compose the spirit or
mind.</p>

<p>These and like precepts the Waldenses presented to their
fellow believers, that they might know how to lead a virtuous
and pious life, with regard to God, as well as to their
neighbor, and to themselves.</p>

<h2>TESTIMONY OF ANCIENT WRITERS, REGARDING THE VIRTUOUS LIFE OF THE WALDENSES</h2> 

<p>Above all things it is a matter of astonishment, that the
most violent opponents of the Waldenses, who .accused them the
most on account of their faith, could nevertheless find nothing
to censure in their life, notwithstanding exceeding attention
was given to this point. It is true, that some, from deadly
hatred against these people, vented many lies in order to
tarnish their reputation; but they were instantly contradicted
by their copartners who had a somewhat higher regard for the
truth.</p>

<p>Jacob de Riberia, who allowed himself to be used as a
persecutor of the Waldenses, says, "That for a long time they
resided in Narbonne, or Gaule Narbonnoise, in the bishoprics of
Albi, Rhodes, Cahors, and Aix la Chapelle; and that at that
time those who would be called ecclesiastics and bishops, were
held in little esteem, because nearly all those priests were
either unworthy or illiterate. Hence it was easy for the
Waldenses, says he, to gain the ascendency among the people, by
their eminent learning." <i>Hist. of the Wald., 1st part, 1st
book, cap. 5, p. 21,</i> from Jac. <i>Rib.,</i> in his account
of the city of Toulouse. <i>Chassagnon,</i> in his <i>History
of the Albigenses, page 27.</i></p>

<p>Reinerius, a Dominican friar and cruel inquisitor against
the Waldenses, assaying to defame them because they frequently
read the holy Scriptures, said: That when the Waldenses wished
to display their learning, they adduced many things relating to
purity, humility, and other virtues, showing that sin must be
shunned, and quoting thereto the words of ,Christ and His
apostles.</p>

<p>He also adds, that they taught, from the Gospel and the
writings of the apostles, how the followers or disciples of
Christ must be, saying, "That those alone are followers of the
apostles, who follow their lives." In conclusion he says, "That
the pope, the bishops, and the clergy, who possess the riches
of this world, and do not follow the holiness of the apostles,
are no rulers of the church of Jesus Christ." <i>Same page,</i>
from <i>Reinerius' book, De forma Heret., fol. 98.</i></p>

<p>Their extraordinary virtue is also very evident from the
tract of Reinerius concerning the manners of the Waldenses,
yea, it is astonishing, how excel-</p>

</div><div id="290"> 

<p>lently this writer, who had no other intention than to say
the worst of them, yea, to brand them as heretics, presented
their virtue, so that the papists should justly feel ashamed
over it; for, these are the words of him who was their
inquisitor, "It can be seen also from their manners and words,
that they are heretics; for their manners are modest and grave;
they exercise no pride in their clothing, for they wear neither
costly nor very mean clothing; they do not engage in any
commerce; they avoid lying, swearing, and cheating, but
maintain themselves by the labor of their hands, as mechanics.
Their teachers ,are weavers and shoemakers, who do not heap up
great riches, but are content with the necessaries of life. The
Lyonists (the Waldenses) are also chaste, temperate in eating
and drinking, and do not frequent taverns, etc." <i>Bapt.
Hist., pages 646, 647.</i></p>

<p>Concerning the manner in which the Waldenses prayed, the
following is found in an ancient papistic book, "The Waldenses
observe this manner in praying: they bow down with bended knees
upon the ground, leaning against a bench or something suitable
for this purpose. Thus, with bended knees, and body bowed down,
they generally continue in prayer as long as it might take to
repeat the Lord's prayer and the amen thirty or forty times.
This they do every day with great reverence." Again, "They say,
teach, or have, no other prayer than the Lord's prayer, or the
paternoster. The angelic Salutation, or the Ave <i>Maria</i>
they condemned." <i>Bapt. Hist., page 647.</i></p>

<p>Among other things, the ancients make mention of some of the
Waldenses, who are called apostles, teachers, angels, and
brethren; but who nevertheless obtained their names not because
of their nobility, high descent, or great worldly learning,
but, to all appearance, on account of their virtue. For, as
regards their descent, and standing in this world, they were
very humble; their names were: Nicholas of Poland; John of
Poland, a peasant's soil; Walrich of Hardeck, a shoemaker by
trade; Conrad of Gmund, in Suabia, a peasant's son; Simon of
Salig, in Hungary, a tailor by trade; Herman of Mistelgen, a
peasant's son, and blacksmith by trade., "But," says he writer who accuses them,"they lead this kind
df life and walk; first, they fast three or four days in the
week, living on bread and water unless they have to do very
hard work; then the chief among them take care that their
subjects appear before them. (If by the terms, <i>chief</i> and
sub<i>jects,</i> there are understood teachers and common
people, or master tradesmen and servants, or the like, there is
no ambiguity). They pray seven times a day; the oldest (among
them) begins the prayer." <i>Bapt. Hist., page 649.</i></p>

<p>These and like testimonies respecting the virtues of the
Waldenses, even from their bitterest accusers, indicate that
they were very merciful, virtuous, and God-fearing people, and
that they were thus greatly calumniated by those who sought to
maintain the contrary in regard to them. But, how unjustly some
have proceeded in accusing said people, with regard to their
faith as well as to their life, of this we will presently give
some account.</p>

<h2>HOW THE WALDENSES WERE UNJUSTLY ACCUSED BY THEIR INQUISITORS, AND ACCUSERS</h2> 

<p>In the second book of the first part of the <i>History of
the Waldenses,</i> by <i>Jean Paul Perrin,</i> translated by
<i>J. M. V., 3d chapter, page 74,</i> col. 2, there is an
account of one Jan Veileti, a monk, and inquisitor over the
Waldenses, and how very unfaithfully and deceitfully he or his
clerk acted in the case of these people, from which it can be
inferred, how it also was with others of their accusers. The
words read as follows</p>

<p>But in the processes which were instituted by this monk Jan
Veileti, we have observed an exquisite kind of villainy and low
cunning; for, having gotten these proceedings into our hands,
we found in them little billets, upon which this commissary
(Jan Veileti) had noted the answers of the accused, simply, and
just as they had come from their lips; but these simple
answers, we afterwards, in the proceedings found extended, and
frequently given in a form contrary to, and quite different
from what the <i>sumptum,</i> that is, the aforementioned
answer as noted in the proceedings, implied and contained;
thereby perverting the meaning of the defendant, and causing
him to say that of which he had never thought.</p>

<p>For example, when he was asked whether he did not believe,
that as soon as the sacramental words were pronounced by the
priest, in the mass, the body of Christ was in the host, just
as He was on the tree of the cross, and the Waldenses answered,
No, Veileti or his clerk set down as his answer</p>

<p>That he had confessed that he did not believe in God.</p>

<p>Again, when it was asked, whether the saints must not be
invoked, the reply was, No, they wrote</p>

<p>That they had reviled, and spoken evil of, the saints.</p>

<p>When it was asked, whether the virgin Mary must not be
saluted and invoked in our extremity, and the answer was, No,
they wrote: That they had reviled the virgin Mary., "Behold, such was the faithlessness of the monks and
inquisitors in such important matters, and it is not without a
certain evidence of God's providence," says the writer,"that
these villainies have been preserved and have remained to the
present time, as a means by which to show, what spirit actuated
those men having, by manifold frauds, oppressed and ultimately
killed and burnt the believing members of the church of Christ,
yet have the audacity to ask us, where the church, and the
believers, whom they themselves put to death, were before our
coming.", "Now, if the reader is desirous to know," says our
author,"how said proceedings fell into our hands, we reply,
that this occurred likewise through</p>

</div><div id="291"> 

<p>the providence of God." He then relates, how the archbishops
of Embrun, John Rostan, and others had these papers and
proceedings under lock and key in their chests and chanceries,
until the city where they resided, was taken, A. D. 1585. The
house of the archbishop having taken fire on this occasion,
many of these processes held in former times against the
Waldenses, were thrown in bags into the street. One Calignon,
chancellor of Na- . varre and a certain councilor of Grenoble,
who were present, ordered them to be picked up and delivered
into their hands; and thus, it is stated, the . perfidious
calumnies against the Waldenses came to light, which,
otherwise, would have gone among the papists, as true
accusations against them. But it is as the common adage says:
<i>Lies fly swiftly, but truth overtakes them.</i> We will now
close our account of the true faith and good practice of the
Waldenses, and show, how long and in what times they
existed.</p>

<h2>CONCERNING THE TIME OF THE WALDENSES</h2> 

<p>Of this, H. Montanus gives this account, "The persuasion of
the Waldenses or Lyonites obtained, in France as well as in
some cities of Italy, secretly as well as openly, according to
the condition of the times, for more than three hundred years,
from the year 1170 or 1180 to 1545, as may be seen in
<i>Sleidanus, lib. 16, Comment." H. Mont. Nietigh., page
86.</i></p>

<p>Their beginning we have fixed, according to the common
reckoning of ancient writers, A. D. 1170; but it appears that
they existed long before; for even as early as the year 1120,
people of the same profession declared, by open writings, their
views against the pope, whom they called antichrist, censuring
him in many things, as stated above.</p>

<p>Moreover, P. J. Twisck gives the following account for the
year 1168, "The Waldenses, of whom mention is made for the year
1159, had at this time so many followers and such great success
with their doctrine, in France, Spain, Italy, and Germany, that
those of their profession, as Guil. Nebriss, writes, numbered
as many as the sand of the sea; who, when they were summoned by
the pope of Rome, to give an account of their doctrine, would
not appear, saying that they were not obliged to obey the pope,
who was the antichrist and had declared them schismatics."
<i>Chron. page</i> 479, Col. 1.</p>

<p>A. D. 1199.-It is stated that at this time the Albigenses,
who were one church with the Waldenses, had so increased in the
earldom of Toulouse, that, as the papists complained,"almost a
thousand cities were polluted with them." <i>Introduction M.
M., page</i> 52, Col. 1, from <i>Baron.</i> A. D. 1199, <i>num.
13.</i></p>

<p>With this the lord of St. Aldegonde concurs, when he says
<i>(in't Tafereel der Geschil., cap. 12,</i> <i>fol.</i>
142), "That, notwithstanding Peter de Bruis was burnt as a
heretic, at St. Giles, near Nismes, their doctrine nevertheless
was spread throughout the province of Gascony, into the earldom
of Fois, Querci, Agenois, Bourdeloicx, and almost throughout
all Languedoc, and the earldom of Jugrane, now called Venice.
In Province also this doctrine was almost universally accepted,
and the cities, Cahors, Narbonne, Carcassonne, Rhodes, Aix la
Chapelle, Mesieres, Toulouse, Avignon, Mantauban, S, Antonin,
Puflanrens, Castres, Minerve, Begiers, Beaucaire, Lombes,
Pannes, and the country of Bigorre were filled with it,
together with many other cities which were favorable to them,
as Tarascon, Marseilles, Perces, Agenois, Marmande, and
Bordeaux; whereby this doctrine spread still further, from the
one side into Spain and England, from the other, into Germany,
Bohemia, Hungary, Moravia, Dalmatia, and even into Italy., "Indeed in such a manner did this doctrine spread that
however sedulously the popes and all their minions exerted
themselves, aided by the princes and the secular magistrates,
to exterminate them, first by disputations, then by banishment
and papal excommunication and anathemas, proclaiming of
crusades, indulgences and pardons to all who would commit
violence upon them, and finally, by all manner of tortures,
fire, gallows, and cruel bloodshedding, yea, in such a manner
that the whole world was in commotion on account of it; yet,
they (the papists) could not prevent the ashes from flying
abroad, and becoming scattered far and wide, almost even to all
the ends of the earth." <i>Introduction M. M., page</i> 52,
Col. 1, 2.</p>

<p>The above seems marvelous, but it is not marvelous with
regard to the Lord God, with whom nothing is wonderful or
impossible. In the meantime, we see how God permitted this
grain of mustard seed of the <i>Waldenses,</i> or <i>Poor Men
of Lyons,</i> to grow up a large tree, and this in the midst of
their persecutions. Oh, the great power, wisdom and love of
God, who never forsakes His people!</p>

<p>P. J. Twisck, having finished his account of the twelfth
century, concludes as follows, with which we will also conclude
our account, "As regards the state and condition of
ecclesiastical affairs in the preceding hundred years, we find
no special change, nor reformation, except that in this century
we have many praiseworthy men who opposed popery with the holy
Scriptures, rejecting images, pilgrimages, masses, and other
papal superstitions, and also infant baptism; concerning which
you may consult the years 1145, 1159, 1168, 1182, 1198. Thus
the Baptists and many others (who had better views than the
papists), and their followers or fellow believers lived for a
long period, or even to this time, in various countries and
places, under many severe persecutions." <i>Chron., 12th
book,</i> page 511.</p>

 

<h1>AN ACCOUNT OF THOSE WHO SUFFERED IN THE TWELFTH CENTURY: SUMMARY OF THE MARTYRS IN THE TWELFTH CENTURY</h1>
</div><div id="292"> 
<p>[In the beginning mention is made of this salutary, but
bloody century, in which the pious witnesses of the Lord come
in multitudes to receive the crown of martyrdom on the
battlefield of Christ.</p>

<p>Four persons, having no good opinion of infant baptism and
transubstantiation banished from the bishopric of Treves, A. D.
1105.</p>

<p>Some of the followers of Berengarius, in the same bishopric,
follow their fellow companions, and are not only banished, but
also expelled, one year after, namely A. D. 1106.</p>

<p>The persecutions increase in violence; some who maintained
the doctrine of Berengarius, burnt alive at Treves and Utrecht,
in the year 1135.</p>

<p>Arnald, a lector at Brescia, opposes infant baptism and the
mass; on account of which he is persecuted, and, finally,
having come to Rome, deprived of his life by fire, A. D.
1145.</p>

<p>The teacher of said Arnald, namely, Peter Abelard, follows,
in the persecution, in the footsteps of his disciple, and is,
by order of the pope, imprisoned in the dungeon of a monastery,
where he ends his life, same year as above.</p>

<p>Peter Bruis, burnt at St. Giles; Henry of Toulouse,
apprehended and put out of the way by the pope's legate; also
many other persons put to death at Paris, for the true
evangelical doctrine, about the year 1145, 1147.</p>

<p>Certain peasants, called Apostolics, put to death for
maintaining the doctrine of the apostles, near Toulouse in
France, A. D. 1155.</p>

<p>Gerard, with about thirty persons, men as well as women,
come to Oxford, in England, where they, for maintaining the
evangelical doctrine, are branded on the forehead, and scourged
out of the city, where they perish from cold, A. D. 1161.</p>

<p>Arnold, Marsilius, and Theodoric, together with five other
men and two women, burned alive, at Cologne and Bonn, A. D.
1163.</p>

<p>Many pious Christians, throughout all France and England,
for maintaining their true belief, cast into the fire alive,
where they expire under great pain, A. D. 1182.</p>

<p>Many Christians in Flanders, put to death by fire for the
same reason; many others miserably perish in other places, in
the year 1183.</p>

<p>One year after the death of the last-mentioned martyrs,
namely, A. D. 1184 or 1185, a decree of Pope Lucius III is
published against the Waldenses, who are called by various
names.</p>

<p>The bloody decree of Ilphons, King of Arragon, published
against said Waldenses, A. D. 1194, circumstantially
presented.</p>

<p>Origin of the inquisition, instituted by Pope In nocent III
against the Waldenses and Albigenses, about the year 1198; to
which end, mention is made of three letters which he wrote with
regard to this matter; whereupon it followed that, A. D. 1200,
five men and three women were burnt at Troyes, in Campania, and
some expelled from Metz.]</p>

<p>Hereafter we shall not have to confine ourselves to such
scanty material, in the account of the martyrs, as we have
necessarily had to do in some of the preceding centuries, when
we, through the absence of ancient histories and records, were
frequently compelled to break off our account of the sainted
confessors of Jesus Christ prematurely; which often grieved us
to the heart.</p>

<p>Now, however, comes the salutary, though bloody century, in
which abundant matter is furnished us, from which to accomplish
our object; the pious witnesses of the Lord now come in
multitudes, who willingly suffer themselves to be put to death
for the proclamation of the only saving truth; crowns of
martyrdom are now proffered to all Christian champions, who
have well acquitted themselves on the field of martyrdom, under
the bloody banner of Jesus Christ.</p>

<p>Excommunication is the beginning of their conflict; then
follow fire, sword, and much other dreadful violence; in and
under which, they, calling upon God, end their lives,.quit the
earth, and take their rest under the wings of their Saviour, or
under the altar of God, until the number of their slain
brethren shall be fulfilled. We then turn, first, to the portal
or entrance of the arena of the Christian martyrs, where we
perceive that some persons must leave their country, and are
banished -as heretics.</p>

<h2>FOUR PERSONS, WHO HAD NO GOOD OPINION OF INFANT BAPTISM AND TRANSUBSTANTIATION, BANISHED AS HERETICS, FROM THE BISH OPRIC OF TREVES, A. D. 1105</h2> 

<p>Here, that which is noted for the year 1105, concerning
those who opposed infant baptism, in the twelfth century,
claims our attention, namely, that then, under the archbishop
of Treves, four persons were banished as heretics, because they
had no good opinion of infant baptism, and denied, that in the
Supper the bread and wine were changed into the real body and
blood of Christ, <i>Merul., fol. 726. P. 7. Twisck, Chron. H.
Montan., Nietigh., page 83. Jac. Mehrn., B. H., page
592.</i></p>

<h2>CERTAIN PERSONS, CALLED BERENGARIANS, BAN ISHED OR EXPELLED FOR THE SAME REASON, AND FROM THE SAME BISHOPRICK (AS THE FORMER PERSONS, A. D. 1106</h2> 

<p>We related, for the year <i>1035,</i> of Berengarius, deacon
of Angiers, that he, with Bruno, the bishop of said city, bean
to teach against transubstantia-</p>

</div><div id="293"> 

<p>tion and infant baptism, and this, the most strenuously,
about A. D. 1060; which the Roman popes, at different times,
endeavored by councils and otherwise to put a stop to, as was
shown in its place. And though Berengarius at times, from fear
of death, showed himself wavering and very weak in his
maintenance of said matter, he still effected so much, that
many who were friendly to his doctrine, concurred with him
therein, so that some of them, who came into the bishopric of
Treves, and maintained their (above-mentioned) views, were,
like the four persons mentioned previously, banished or
expelled by the archbishop of that place, A. D. 1106. Dispersed
thence, they departed into the Netherlands, into the country of
Liege, and to Antwerp, and thereabouts, scattering,
whithersoever they came, the good seed of their true belief. In
the meantime, though these had been expelled from the bishopric
of Treves, some nevertheless remained, who held their meetings
in secret, and taught. In the <i>2d book</i> of the <i>History
of the Persecutions, page 395, col. 3,</i> from <i>Thuan.
Prefat., in Hist. sui temp. ad Reg. Honr. 4,</i> where for A.
D. 1060, read A. D. 1106.</p>

<p>NOTE.-The authors state of the aforementioned people only
that they were expelled, etc., but as no formal expulsion can
take place, without a previous condemnation, we are quite
inclined to think, that they were first banished, and then
expelled.</p>

<h2>SEVERAL PERSONS WHO MAINTAINED THE DOC TRINE OF BERENGARIUS, BURNT ALIVE AT TREVES AND UTRECHT, A. D. <i>1135</i></h2> 

<p>We read in the ancient chronicles, that in the year
<i>1135,</i> several persons were burnt alive by the Emperor
Lotharius, at Treves and Utrecht; concerning which the
<i>Chron. Sax.,</i> in particular, expressly mentions, that
they were burnt as heretics. However, in what their alleged
heresy consisted, is not clearly expressed. This, however, is
certain</p>

<p>that they separated from the Roman church, and opposed her
errors.</p>

<p>Abraham Mellinus concludes, from the circumstances mentioned
with regard to them, that they were Berengarians, or followers
of Berengarius."For," says he,"the reader must know, that after
Berengarius' death very many were condemned as heretics, simply
because they had the same belief with Berengarius, respecting
the Lord's Supper, and opposed the bread-god of the mass."
<i>Second book, fol. 395, col. 3,</i> from <i>Chron.
Sax.</i></p>

<h2>ARNALD, A LECTOR AT BRESCIA, AFTER MUCH PERSECUTION, BURNT AT ROME, FOR HIS VIEWS AGAINST INFANT BAPTISM, THE MASS, ETC., A. D. <i>1145</i></h2> 

<p>In our account of those who opposed infant baptism, in the
twelfth century, we made mention, for he year <i>1139,</i> of
one Arnald, a lector at Brescia, in Italy, and stated, that,
having been instructed by Peter Abelard, he, besides the
doctrine he maintained against the mass and transubstantiation,
also taught against infant baptism; on account of which Pope
Innocent II commanded him to be silent. Thereupon he fled into
Germany or Switzerland, where for a time he continued to teach.
Thence, after the death of the aforesaid pope, he came to Rome.
But obtaining there an incredible number of followers, and
being severely persecuted by the Popes Eugenius and Adrian, he
fled to the Emperor Frederick Barbarossa, who delivered him
into the hands of the pope; and thus he was finally, at Rome,
placed to the stake, burnt to ashes, and the ashes thrown into
the Tiber, lest the people should show him honor. It is
recorded that this occurred A. D. <i>1145,</i> after he had, as
is reckoned, strenuously maintained the above doctrine for
about six years. <i>Bapt. Hist., page 598,</i> from <i>Baron.,
A. D. 1139, num. 3, and A. D. 1145, num. 3; also, H. Montan.,
Nietigh., page 84.</i></p>

<p>Abraham Mellinus, writing of the belief of A:nald, says, "He
also taught quite differently concerning the sacramentof the
altar, and (notice), of infant baptism, from that which was
taught in the Roman church at that time. He doubtless, in this
respect, held the views of Peter de Bruis and Henry of Toulouse
(of whom we shall speak afterwards), rejecting
transubstantiation, and denying that the mass is a sacrifice
for the living and the dead, and that (notice again) either
baptism or the faith of others saves infants." Thus far, <i>A.
Mell., 2d book, page 425, col. 3.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-Abraham Mellinus, who states this concerning the
belief of Arnald, was a preacher of the Calvinistic church, in
'St. Anthony's Polder, and, consequently, himself an advocate
of infant baptism. Nevertheless, he distinctly says of Arnald,
whom he recognized as a pious martyr, that he taught quite
differently concerning infant baptism, and also that this
baptism and the faith of others do not save children, etc., the
opposite of which the Romanists maintained.</p>

<p><i>Further Observation.-As</i> regards the manner in which
he maintained, promulgated, and inculcated said doctrine, and
himself kept it to the end, as well as what happened to him on
this account; that is, all the circumstances, and also a
summary of the matter, see <i>Otto, Friesing, lib. 1, cap. 27,
28,</i> and <i>lib. 2, cap. 20, de Gest. Frid. L: Imp. Gunth.
Ligur., lib. 3, de Gest. Frid. 1. Bernhard. EQist., 196, 189,
195. Sigon. de Regno Ital., lib.</i> 11, from <i>A. D. 1139</i>
until <i>1146. Abent., lib. 6. Annal. Boio Gerhohus ReichersQ.,
lib. 1, de Invest. Antichrist. aped Gretser in Proleg. Script.
contra Walden., cap. 4, Tom. 4, Concil. .edition 1612, p. 23,
com</i>pared with <i>Bapt. His., p. 686.</i></p>

</div><div id="294"> 

<h2>PETER ABELARD, ON ACCOUNT OF THE ABOVE MENTIONED BELIEF, IS CONFINED, BY ORDER OF THE POPE OF ROME, IN THE DUNGEON OF A MONASTERY, AND DIES THERE, A. D. <i>1145</i></h2> 

<p>H. Montanus states, from Caesar Baronius, that this Peter
Abelard was the one from whom the afore-mentioned Arnald had
obtained the doctrine against infant baptism, drawn, however,
chiefly from the holy Scriptures; which is not contradicted,
but sufficiently confirmed, by Mellinus, when he says, "That
said Arnald was a disciple of Peter Abelard, from France, where
he had pursued his studies." <i>Second book, page 425, col.
3.</i></p>

<p>He then adds this account, "That Pope Innocent, after the
great synod which he had held, at Rome, against the abettors of
this doctrine, wrote letters to Samson, Archbishop of Rheims,
Henry, Archbishop of Sens, and Bernhard, abbot of Clairvaux,
against Arnald of Brescia, and his teacher Peter Abelard;
charging the former, that wherever they should find these two,
they should confine them each separately, in a monastery, as
originators of a perverted doctrine, and antagonists of the
Catholic faith, and burn their books or writings wherever they
should discover them.", "As to what was the belief of Peter Abelard," says
Mellinus,"and in what points he assailed popery, can be seen
and read in all his works, which have just been published in
print in France; where it will also be found, in his letters,
how much he had to suffer for his belief."</p>

<p><i>Touching his belief and death. - Concerning</i> Peter
Abelard and his belief, especially how he opposed infant
baptism, and instructed his disciple, Arnald, in this point,
see <i>Jacob Mehrn., Bapt. Hist., page 598. Baron., A. D. 1139,
num. 3,</i> and <i>A. D. 1145. H. Montan. Nietigh., page
84.</i> Also, <i>Introduction, fol. 49.</i></p>

<p>Mell inus finally states, from ancient writers, that Peter
Abelard, after much suffering, died in the monastery in which
he had been confined, by order of the pope, on account of his
faith. This happened, according to our reckoning, about the
year <i>1146,</i> after the death of his disciple Arnald.</p>

<h2>PETER BRUIS, BURNT AT ST. GILES; HENRY OF TOULOUSE APPREHENDED AND PUT OUT OF THE WAY, BY THE POPE's LEGATE; AND MANY OTHER PERSONS PUT TO DEATH AT PARIS, FOR THE TRUE EVAN GELICAL DOCTRINE; ABOUT THE YEARS <i>1145, 1147</i></h2> 

<p>P. J. Twisck gives the following account in his
<i>Chronijck,</i> for the year <i>1145:</i> "About this time
there were famous in France, Peter Bruis, formerly a priest,
and his disciple, Henry of Toulouse; both had been monks, were
learned men, and greatly censured the papal errors, sparing
neither great nor smal. They <i>called the Pope the prince
of</i> Sod om, and the city of Rome the mother of all
unrighteousness, abomination, and execration. They spoke
against the mass, images, pilgrimages, and other institutions
of the Roman church. They renounced infant baptism, saying that
none but the believing were entitled to baptism.</p>

<p>When Peter had preached about twenty years, namely, from
before the year <i>1126</i> until <i>1145,</i> the people
flocking to him in great numbers, he was finally publicly burnt
in the city of St. Giles, also called St. Aegidius.</p>

<p>His disciple Henry, who followed him in the doctrine, was
intercepted and apprehended some time after by the legate of
the pope, and put out of the way, so .that his fate is not
known. This is held to have occurred two years after the death
of Peter Bruis, namely A. D. <i>1147.</i></p>

<p>After their .death a cruel persecution arose against all
those who had followed their doctrine, many of whom went
joyfully to meet death. In short, however assiduously the popes
with all their shaven heads aided by princes and secular
magistrates, exerted themselves to exterminate them, first, by
disputations, then by banishment and papal excommunications and
anathemas, proclamation of crusades, indulgences, and pardons
to all those who should do violence* to said people, and,
finally, by all manner of torment, fire, gallows, and cruel
bloodshedding, yea, so that the whole world was in commotion on
account of it; yet, could they not prevent this persuasion from
spreading everywhere, and going forth into every country and
kingdom, holding their worship secretly as well as openly, with
great or small numbers, according to the tyranny, cruelty or
persuasion of the times, and continuing until the year
<i>1304;</i> of whom over a hundred persons were put to death,
or burnt, at Paris; and thus their descendants, as history
states, continued, though under much tribulation, until this
time. P. 1. <i>Twisck, Chron., page 450,</i> from Philip
<i>Marnix Tafer, 3d part, cap. 12, fol. 141, 142. Merula, fol.
748, 853. Hist. Mart. Doopsg., fol. 15.</i> Also,
<i>Introduction, page 49.</i></p>

<h2>CERTAIN PEASANTS, CALLED APOSTOLICS, PUT TO DEATH FOR MAINTAINING THE DOCTRINE OF THE APOSTLES, NEAR TOULOUSE, IN FRANCE, A. D. 1155</h2> 

<p>It is stated, that about A. D. 1155 there were in the above
part of France, certain simple but truthloving peasants, who,
pointing to no other author of their doctrine or belief, than
to the apostles, called themselves Apostolics, as though they
would say, that their doctrine and belief were derived from the
apostles. Bemard,** abbot of Clairvaux, greatly inveighed
against them in divers sermons, calling them a sort of
despised, boorish rabble, ig-</p>

<br /><cite>*"War", says the writer; but this signifies
violence, vexation, etc.</cite> 

<br /><cite>*"Zealous Bernard," writes Mellinus,"allowed
himself to be bribed, and dared to preach and write whatever he
heard said.--Second book, fol. 438, col. 2, in the margin.</cite> 

</div><div id="295"> 

<p>norant and altogether weak."They," he says,"are boorish
people, idiots, and completely sold; but they must not be dealt
with imprudently.""From this it appears," writes Abraham
Mellinus,"that they must not have been so very dull and
ignorant after all."</p>

<p>In the meantime, Bernard continues to rail against them,
after papistic fashion."Inquire," says he,"for their author; of
what sect they are? They will not be able to name any one. But
what heresy is there, that has not its author from among men?
The Manicheans had Manes as their head and master; the
Sabellians had Sabellicus; the Arians, Arium;the Eunomians,
Eunomium;the Nestorians, Nestorius; likewise every other
similar pest had its separate master among men, from which it
derived both its origin and name; but what name or title shall
be given or accorded to these? None at all," he says,"because
they received their heresy neither from nor by men;
nevertheless, far be it from us to say that they received it
through the revelation of Christ."</p>

<p>Continuing, he shows in what their so-called heresy
consisted, saying, "They ridicule us, that we baptize infants;
that we implore the intercession of the saints, and the like.
It has been found, that they would rather die, than be
converted (namely, to the Roman church). Many a time the
believers (he means the papists) laid hands on some of them,
drew them forth; and being asked concerning their faith, they
would not confess their wickedness, but openly protested, that
they taught the true godliness, and were ready to die for it.
In the meantime, the people that stood by, were not less ready
to put them to death: and falling upon them, they made these
new heretics martyrs of their own faith.", "Some wonder at this, that, when led forth to death, they
were not only joyful, but also patient; but it is to be
deplored, that not only secular princes, but also, it is said,
some ecclesiastics, yea bishops, who ought much rather to have
persecuted them, upheld them for lucre's sake, saying: 'Why
should we condemn them as heretics, who have not been convinced
of heresy, nor have confessed the same?'"</p>

<p>Thus far, Bernard, who was called, <i>The Mellifluent,</i>
but who nevertheless poured forth nothing but bitter gall
against these people. In Serm. 16 and 66, <i>on Cant.</i> Also,
<i>EQist. 240,</i> oldest edition.</p>

<p>From this it is sufciently apparent, writes Mellinus, that
they persecuted these poor people unto death, not on account of
Manichean doctrines, which Bernard unjustly and covertly
imputes to them, but because they opposed the Roman church and
her errors. <i>Second book, fol. 438, col. 1, 2.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-These were the same people of whom we made mention, in
our account of those who, in the twelfth century, opposed
infant baptism, from Nicholas Sander, who states concerning
them, "That they were called Apostolics, because they professed to
walk in the footsteps of the apostles, and declared to hold
themselves only to the apos olical writings; that they
contemned infant baptism, purgatory, praying for the dead,
invocation of the saints, swearing of oaths, etc.; that they
accepted no evidence save from the New .Testament; and went
joyfully unto death." Nic. <i>Sand., lib. and Histor. Doopsg.,
A. 8. D. Anth. Jac., fol. 118. H. Montan. Nietigh., page 84.
Introduction, page 50, Jacob Mehrning, Bacent;t. Hist., page
599. P. I. Tzeusck, Chron., page 469. B.</i></p>

<h2>GERARD, WITH ABOUT THIRTY OTHERS, MEN AS WELL AS WOMEN, FOR MAINTAINING THE APOS TOLICAL DOCTRINE, AT OXFORD, IN ENG LAND, ARE BRANDED IN THE FOREHEAD, SCOURGED OUT OF THE CITY, AND MISERABLY PERISH WITH COLD, A. D. .1161</h2> 

<p>It is recorded* that A. D. 1161, in the eighth year of Henry
II., King of England, about thirty persons, men as well as
women, natives of Germany, sailed over to England. The papists
called them <i>erring spirits</i> and <i>publicans,</i> saying
that they had sprung from an unknown author;** but others have
called them Petro-brusians, Berengarians, Poor Men of Lyons,
etc., because they, it appears, had ..their views against
infant baptism, transubstantiation, and other errors of the
Roman church, in common with Peter Bruis, Berengarius, and the
Poor Men of Lyons., "There were upwards of thirty of them," says the papistic
writer,"who, concealing their errors, had peaceably come into
the land, in order to propagate their belief. Their principal
leader was one Gerard, upon whom they looked as their lord and
master; for he alone had a little learning, while all the rest
were illiterate idiots, a very low and boorish class of people,
and of the German nation and language. But they could not long
remain concealed, since some made very diligent inquiries
regarding them; and when it was found that they belonged to a
strange sect, they were apprehended."</p>

<h2>THEIR ANSWERS TO THE QUESTIONS RESPECTING THEIR FAITH</h2> 

<p>The king, not willing to release or to punish them unheard,
convened, on this account, a council at Oxford; where the most
learned of the prisoners, namely, Gerard, being solemnly
interrogated concerning their religion, answered in the name of
all, saying, "That they were Christians, and regarded the
doctrine of the apostles." And when they were properly
questioned respecting all the articles of the faith, they
answered well with regard to the nature of the supreme
Physician; but as regards the means with which he has been
pleased to heal our weakness, that is, respecting the divine
sacraments,"they," says the papistic writer,"judged</p>

<br /><cite>* Vignierus, in Hist. Eccl.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* The papistic writer says, "From an unknown
author." The Calvinistic Mellinus, however says, "But perhaps
from Peter de Bruis, Henry of Toulouse, or Berengarius
himself."-Secound book fol. 439. col. 4, m the margin.</cite> 

</div><div id="296"> 

<p>perversely. For they aspersed baptism (he means infant
baptism, for this was the baptism then held in esteem by the
Roman church) and also the thankoffering (the mass)."</p>

<h2>SUMMARY OF THE DOCTRINE OF WHICH THEY WERE ACCUSED</h2> 

<p>The doctrines with which they were charged, consisted of the
following points (from <i>Abr. Mellinus,* 2d book, fol</i>.
440), "That their belief concerning the sacraments, of baptism
and the Supper, as well as respecting marriage, was different
from what had been decreed by the Roman church, whom they
called the whore of Babylon, because she had forsaken the true
faith in Christ; they said that she was like the barren
fig-tree which our Lord Jesus Christ cursed. . They also said
that the pope and the bishops must not be obeyed when they
command anything that is contrary to the Word of God; also,
that monachism was a stinking carrion, also, that all monastic
vows are vain and useless, yea, that they foster
lasciviousness; also, that all the orders .and degrees of the
priestly dignity are marks of the great beast; also, that
purgatory, masses, church consecrations, worship of the saints,
anniversaries for the dead, etc., are genuine inventions of the
devil.", "These," says Mellinus,"were about the principal articles
which the fathers of the Oxford council could not brook, and on
account of which they scourged and banished them out of their
country, yea, let them freeze to death."</p>

<h2>THEIR CONDUCT TOWARD THE- FATHERS IN THE COUNCIL IN OXFORD, AND WHAT THE COUN CIL DID IN THE MATTER</h2> 

<p>We return to the papistic author, to hear from his own lips,
how they dealt with these upright and simple people."When the
fathers of the council," he writes;"admonished them to do
penitence and manifest sorrow for their belief, that they might
be united with the (Roman) church, they despised this advice,
as well as the threats with which they were menaced in order
that they, through fear, if by no other means, might be driven
to conversion; yea, they scoffed at them, saying: 'Blessed are
they which are persecuted for righteousness sake: for theirs is
the kingdom of heaven."', "In order, then," he writes,"that the poison of their heresy
might not spread further, the bishops publicly pronounced them
heretics, and delivered them over to the Catholic prince, for
corporal punishment. The latter commanded that they. should be
branded on their foreheads, as an infamous mark of their
heresy, and publicly, in the sight of all the</p>

<br /><cite>* All these passages, Mellinus has taken from
the account of Guido Perpiggna in lib. de Haeresib. Bal. Cent.
2, in Append. ad Gervasium Giestrensem. Guido was of the
opinion, that said people belonged to the Poor Men of Lyons,
that is the Waldenses. </cite>
<p>people, scourged out of the city,
strictly prohibiting any one from taking them into his house,
or affording them the least comfort or assistance." From
William <i>Neubrig. Hist. Engl., lib. 2, cap. 13.</i></p> 

<h2>JOYFUL GOING OUT OF THESE PEOPLE TO CORPORAL PUNISHMENT, AND THEIR MISERABLE DEATH</h2> 

<p>This sentence having been pronounced, they were led out to
punishment. They went with gladness and in great haste, their
leader, namely, Gerard, going before them, singing, "Blessed are
ye," says the Lord,"when men shall hate you, for my sake."</p>

<p>They were then, according to the rigor of the sentence,
branded on their- foreheads, their leader receiving a double
brand, one on his forehead, the other on his chin, as a sign
that he was their leader. Thereupon their upper garments, to
the waist, were cut from their bodies, and they were publicly
scourged, and cast out of the city. But it being a bitter cold
winter, and no one showing them the least mercy, they miserably
perished by the intense cold, which they were unable to bear on
their naked bodies. <i>William Neubrig. Hist. Engl., lib. 2,
cap. 13, 8th year of Henry II, King of England.</i></p>

<h2>FURTHER OBSERVATIONS TOUCHING THE ORIGIN AND FAITH OF THESE MARTYRS</h2> 
<p>"For further explanation of this history," writes
Mellinus,"which has been written by a bitter papist, the reader
must be reminded to imitate the bee-which extracts honey from
the same flower out of which the toad draws poison-and,
contemning the bitterness of the words of our adversaries, to
pay regard only to the matter itself.</p>

<p>That he (the papistic writer) says, that these Christians,
whom he calls Publicans, had their origin from an unknown
author,* leads Vignierius to suppose, that they may have sprung
from Peter Bruis, or from his companion, Henry of Toulouse,
Guido of Perpigna, however, thinks they belonged to the Poor
Men of Lyons, that is the Waldenses. <i>In lib. de Haeresib.
Bal. Centur. 2, in Append. ad Gervasium Giestrensum.</i> See
also <i>Abr. Mell., 2d book, fol. 440, col. 1.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-In regard to what was the belief of Peter Bruis and
his companion, Henry of Toulouse, as well as of the Poor Men of
Lyons, that is, the Waldenses, we have already shown, that it
is not at variance with the belief of the Anabaptists, but much
rather accords with it; and hence it is evident that these
thirty persons, who made said confession, were true martyrs,
since they suffered for the true faith, and the truth of Jesus
Christ. Concerning these martyrs, see also five years later,
Mart. Paris, lib. 5.</p>

<br /><cite>* From the writings of Gascony.</cite> 

</div><div id="297"> 

<h2>ARNOLD, MARSILIUS, AND THEODORIC, WITH FIVE OTHER MEN, AND TWO WOMEN, BURNED ALIVE AT COLOGNE AND BONN, A. D. 1163</h2>  
<p>"In the year of our Lord <i>1163,"</i> says the papistic
writer Orithemius,"certain heretics of the sect called
<i>Cathari,"</i> (by which are understood the Waldenses, whose
confession of faith we have above shown not to be at variance
with the Anabaptists of the present day),"came from Flanders to
Cologne, and there secretly abode in a certain barn, near the
city. But as they did not come to church, even on Sundays, they
were detected by those living near them. Having been brought to
an examination therefore, by our mother, the holy church (he
means Roman church), they were found to be confirmed heretics."
<i>Orith. Chron. Hirsaug.</i> With this he closes. And hence in
order to explain the matter more fully, we must of necessity
have recourse to papistic writers, though they were the
adversaries of these people.</p>

<h2>ECBERT'S ACCOUNT OF THE VIEWS OF THESE PEO PLE, AS OPPOSED TO THE ROMAN CHURCH</h2> 

<p>Concerning them, Ecbert, a monk of Schonaugh, who himself
disputed with them, writes thus, "Behold, certain perverted, and
perverting men (thus he calls good Christians), who had
concealed themselves for a long time in hiding places, and had
corrupted the Christian faith in many plain and simple people,
are at this time so greatly multiplied throughout all the
lands, that the Christian church suffers great injury from the
very pernicious poison (so he calls the truth of the Gospel)
which they everywhere vent against her." <i>Serm. 8, contra
Catharos, T. 2. Auctor. Bybl. S. S. Patrum, edition Paris, A.
D. 1610, p. 831.</i></p>

<h2>TRITHEMIUS' ACCOUNT OF THEIR EXAMINATION, AND DISPUTATION WITH ECBERT; ALSO OF THEIR DEATH</h2> 

<p>Trithemius gives a brief description, of their examination
and disputation with Ecbert, abbot of the monastery of St.
Florian in Schonaugh, in the bishopric of Treves</p>

<p>The clergy and the chief men of the city of .Cologne, by
messengers and letters, requested Ecbert to come to Cologne, as
being a very learned man, in order to examine said heretics.
Abbot Ecbert arrived at Cologne, August <i>2,</i> A. D.
<i>1163,</i> and entered into a public disputation with three
of these heretics, Arnold, Marsilius, and Theodoric, who seemed
to possess better abilities than the rest.</p>

<p>However, he does not state precisely, what were the articles
of the discussion, unless we are to glean them from his
following words, "They contemned all the rulers of the church,
prelates, priests, and clerks, calling them soul-deceivers and
snares of the devil. They ridiculed the sacraments of the Roman
church (among which was included infant bapti-mI and denied the
hnlv hodv anti blood of the Lord (that is, transubstantiation
in the sacrament of the altar). Now, when they could neither by
arguments, nor by authority (namely, from the testimony of the
fathers), nor by admonitions, be induced to renounce their
errors (thus he calls their true faith), but obstinately
persisted in their purpose, they were utterly cast out from the
church, and delivered into the hands of the laity, that is,
into the power of the secular authorities, who led them, eight
men and two women, out of the city, and committed them to the
flames, on the fifth day of August of the same year."
<i>Frith., in Hist.</i> Also, <i>2d book of</i> <i>the
Persecutions, fol</i>. 441, cot. <i>3,</i> 4.</p>

<h2>OF THE CONSTANCY OF THESE MARTYRS IN THE FIRE; AND HOW ECBERT MOCKED THEM</h2> 

<p>Caesarius of Heisterbach writes, that this took place in the
Jewish cemetery, and that Arnold, as he stood with his
disciples or fellow believers in the fire, said, "Remain
steadfast in your faith, for this day you shall be with the
holy martyr, Laurence." <i>Ccesar., lib. 5, cap. 19.</i></p>

<p>Ecbert made sport of the death of these pious people; for it
appears, that, despising infant baptism, they had said, that in
order to be saved it was necessary first to be baptized with
the Holy Ghost and with fire, in consequence of which this
wicked man inquiringly said, "And has not the city of Cologne
thus baptized (namely, with fire) your arch-heretic Arnold with
his accomplices, and the city of Bonn, Theodoric with his
co-partners?" <i>Serm. 8, advers. Catharos.</i></p>

<p>O awful blasphemy I But the Lord shall render to every man
according to his righteousness and faithfulness. I Sam.
<i>26:23.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-P. J. Twisck relates of these people that, out of
hatred, they were called Adamites, Catharists, Patarini, and
Passaginians, and that the Emperor Frederick published some
decrees against them."But thus, those who seek to, live in the
fear of God, are always exterminated. In this manner, certain
persons, eight men, two women, and a girl, who had gone from
Flanders to Cologne, were burned in a barn before the city, an
the fifth of August." <i>Chron., page 4'76,</i> cot. 1, 2, from
<i>Abbot Trithem. Mer., fol. 765. Neoburgens., lib. 11, carp.
15.</i></p>

<h2>MANY PIOUS CHRISTIANS THROUGHOUT FRANCE AND ENGLAND, CAST ALIVE INTO THE FIRE, AND BURNT, FOR MAINTAINING THEIR ORTHODOX BELIEF, A. D. 1182</h2> 

<p>William of Armorica and Roger of Hovedon state that at this
time, namely, about the year 1182, in various places throughout
the entire kingdom of France, very many Waldenses or Albigenses
were burnt under the name of Publicans.</p>

<p>Concerning this, the aforesaid William writes in his history
of Philip, King of France as follows, "All the opposers of our
faith, commonly called</p>

</div><div id="298"> 

<p>Publicans, having been compelled to come forth from their
hiding places, were brought before the court, and, upon the law
being applied to them, convicted of heresy, and, hence, were
cast into the fire and burnt alive." <i>Philippidos, lib.
1.</i></p>

<p>Roger of Hovedon adds, for the end of the year 1182, that
the King of England, Henry II, notwithstanding there were very
many of these Publicans, that is, Waldenses or orthodox
Christians, in his land, he would in no wise tolerate them, but
commanded that they should likewise everywhere be burnt, as in
France.* <i>Annal. part 2, at the close of the year
1182.</i></p>

<p>As to the belief of the Waldenses and Albigenses, who were
also called publicans by their enemies, it has already, in
their own confession, been shown not to militate against the
confession of the Anabaptists; as we have said once for all,
and to which we here again call attention.</p>

<h2>MANY GOD-FEARING PEOPLE PUT TO DEATH, IN FLANDERS, ON ACCOUNT OF THEIR VIEWS AGAINST THE ROMAN CHURCH, BY THE COUNT OF ALSACE, A. D. <i>1182</i></h2> 

<p>Magister** John Andriess, P. J. Twisck, H. Montanus, and
various other authentic writers, unanimously state, that A.
<i>D. 1182,</i> there were put to death, by Count Philip of
Alsace, many Christians, who were called heretics because they
contemned infant baptism, the sacrament of the altar, and the
sacrifice of the mass, etc. See 1. <i>Andr.,</i> in his
<i>History of the Antiquity of the Faith, letter E. P. .I.
Twisek, Chron., page 489. H. Montanus, Nietigh., p. 86.</i>
Also, <i>Hist. Mart. der Doopsg., A. 8.</i> Also, <i>Martyrs
Mirror,</i> printed <i>A. D. 1631, Introduction, p. 52.</i></p>

<h2>MANY CHRISTIANS BURNT IN FLANDERS, A. D.
<i>1183,</i> AND VERY MANY PUT TO DEATH IN OTHER PLACES</h2> 

<p>For the year <i>1183</i> we read of many more such people,
who were called publicans (of which name we have already
spoken) and whom Philip, Count of Flanders, and William,
Archbishop of Rheims, caused, most unmercifully, to be
burnt.</p>

<p>Concerning this, Rigordus, an ancient historian of those
times, writes as follows for said year, "At this time, very many
heretics (thus this papistic writer calls the true Christians),
were burnt in Flanders, by the reverend bishop of Rheims,
cardinal priest of the title of Sancta Sabina, Legate of the
Pope, and by Philip, the illustrious count of Flanders, Rig.,
p. 168, <i>edit. Weehelian.</i>, "The same year," says the above author,"over seven thousand
Cottarelli (thus he calls the pious witnesses of Jesus, also
called Waldenses and Albigenses), were slain in the province of
Bourges, by</p>

<br /><cite>* The reader must know that the writers who have
given vent in this most odious manner to said testimonies
respecting the holy martyrs, were papists.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* Master, or sir; a title of the middle ages,
equivalent to the modern title of doctor. he inhabitants of the
land, who all united against them, as against the enemies of
God."</cite> 

<p>Notice here, that they must all have been defenseless
people, since so great a number suffered themselves to be put
to death by so few people as there were at that time in the
small province of Bourges; however, we leave this to God.</p>

<p>The same writer adds also this, "In the same year, Pope
Lucius condemned as heretics those who in Italy were called
Humilitani, and in France, Poor Men of Lyons (the Albigenses
and Waldenses), whereupon, as may well be supposed, no small
persecution took place in those hot times.</p>

<p>This decree, it seems, was first published, or else renewed,
A. <i>D.</i> 1184, or, as others state, A. <i>D.1185,</i>
according to the account of Mellinus, <i>2d book, fol. 443,
col. 2.</i></p>

<h2>DECREE OF POPE LUCIUS III AGAINST THE WAL DENSES, ETC., WHO ARE CALLED BY VARIOUS NAMES</h2> 

<p>In the year <i>1184,</i> or, as others write, <i>1185,</i>
Pope Lucius made a decree in the city of Verona, in the
presence of the Emperor Frederick, which reads as follows, "In order to eradicate the wickedness of various heresies
that have begun to manifest themselves in many countries
throughout the whole world, the power of ecclesiastical
discipline must be called into requisition., "Therefore, relying on the presence and power of our most
beloved son, the Roman Emperor Frederick, we, with the common
advice of our brethren, as well as of other patriarchs,
archbishops, and many princes, who have assembled here from
different parts of the realm, have, by this general resolution
of our present decree, set ourselves against the heretics, who
from various errors have received various names, and by
apostolical authority, through this our constitution, have
condemned all heresies by whatever name they may be called.
First, the Catharists, and the Patarini, and those who falsely
and fictitiously call themselves Humiliati (humiliated ones) or
Poor Men of Lyons; as well as the Passaginians, Josephists,
Arnoldists; all these we lay under an everlasting curse., "And since some, having a form of godliness, but denying the
power thereof, as the apostle says, have assumed the authority
to preach, though the same apostle says, How shall they
preach,. except they be sent? all those to whom this is
forbidden, or who, not being sent, presumptuously dare preach,
secretly or publicly, without authority from the apostolic see,
or consent from the bishop of the place; and all who believe
otherwise or do not fear to teach otherwise than the Roman
church preaches and maintains, in regard to the sacrament of
the body and blood of our Lord Jesus Christ, or to baptism
(namely, infant baptism), or to the confession of sins, that
is, auricular confession, or to</p>

</div><div id="299"> 

<p>marriage, and other sacraments of the church; and, in
general, all those who will not condemn those as heretics whom
the Roman church, or any bishop in his bishopric, with the
advice of his clergy, or, in case of the decease of their own
bishop, the clergy themselves, with the advice of the
neighboring bishops, have declared as such, all these, I say,
we bind with the bond of an everlasting ban. Likewise those who
take them into their houses, and defend them, and all who
uphold said heretics, fostering in them the heretical
wickedness, whether they be called <i>Consolati, Credentes,
Perfecti,</i> or by whatever other similar name, we include
them all in this sentence of condemnation."</p>

<p>Thus far, the decree of Pope Lucius. We will now give some
explanation of a few strange names that occur in the same. As
regards the common names of the Waldenses, of which mention is
made in the decree of Lucius, namely, that they were called
Catharists, Patarini, Humiliati, Poor Men of Lyons,
Passaginians, Josephists, Arnoldists, etc., these we have
already sufficiently explained. There remain therefore to be
explained only their special distinctive names, as
<i>Consolati, Credentes,</i> and <i>Perfecti. Consolati,</i>
that is, comforted; by this name were called those who had
recently come into the church, and were not yet firmly
established in the faith.</p>

<p><i>Credentes,</i> that is, believing; by this name were
called those who were confirmed in the faith, and had increased
in it to a considerable extent.</p>

<p><i>Perfecti,</i> that is, perfect; by this name were called
those who applied themselves to faith and godliness to the full
extent of their ability, so that they seemed to be perfect
therein. These were also called <i>Boni Hoinines,</i> that is,
good men.</p>

<p>The most of this can be gleaned from Alanus, who wrote at
the close of the twelfth century, namely, A. D. 1194. In
<i>edit. Paris, A. D. 1612,</i> p. 110. Also, <i>Abr. Mell., 2d
book, p. 443, col. 3.</i> Thus, the diversity of names does not
indicate a diversity of people or faith, but simply the lesser
or greater perfection in the faith in those who together were
but one people.</p>

<h2>BLOODY DECREE <i>OF</i> ILPHONSUS, OR
ALPHONSUS, KING <i>OF</i> ARAGON, AGAINST THE WALDENSES, PUBLISHED A. D. 1194</h2> 
 <p>"Ilphonsus, by the grace of God, King of Aragon, to all
archbishops, bishops, and other prelates of the church of our
kingdom; to all earls, viscounts, soldiers, and to all the
people in our realm and under our dominion, greeting, and good
wishes that the Christian religion may be maintained
entire., "Whereas, it has pleased God, to place us over His people,
it is right and just that we should constantly, and according
to our ability, care for the safety, happiness and protection
of said people; therefore, as faithful successors of our
ancestors, and as being justly obedient to the ordinances of
the church, who have deemed it well, that the heretics should
everywhere be rejected, condemned and persecuted, from the face
of God and of all Catholics; namely, the Waldenses or
Insabbathi (that is, those who do not observe the Sabbaths or
holydays of the Roman church), who call themselves Poor Men of
Lyons, and all other heretics, of whom there are so many that
they cannot all be enumerated, who have been excommunicated by
the holy church, from our whole realm and dominion, as enemies
of the cross of Christ, dishonorers of the Christian religion
and our person, and open enemies of our realm, we command them
to depart and flee from our kingdom., "If from this day on, any one shall receive said Waldenses
and Insabbathi, or other heretics of whatever confession, into
his house, or hear their pernicious preaching in any place, or
give them food, or dare show them any other favor, be it known
to the same, that he has incurred the disfavor of God and of
us, that he is punishable for the crime of <i>leze-majesty,</i>
and that his goods shall be confiscated without appeal., "And we command that this our decree and perpetual
ordinance, in every city, castle, and village of our kingdom
and jurisdiction, and throughout all the lands of our dominion,
shall be read and presented every Sunday to the people for
observance, by the bishops and other rulers of the church, and
by our governors, bailiffs, justiciaries, and other
magistrates, and that upon all offenders the aforesaid
punishment shall be inflicted., "Be it further known: If any person, noble or ignoble, shall
find any of the afore-mentioned heretics anywhere in our lands,
who, after three days' proclamation, knowing this our decree,
do not speedily depart, but obstinately remain; and shall
inflict upon them every evil, ignominy, and disgrace, death and
maiming alone excepted, he shall have to fear no punishment for
it, but shall know, that he has much rather merited our favor
thereby, and that his deed is pleasing and acceptable to
us., "We, however, give these infamous heretics, though above
their deserts and against reason, a respite till tomorrow,
which is All Saints Day, to leave, or to begin leaving, our
land. If thereafter any do still remain, we give to each and
all of our subjects full authority, to rob and plunder them, to
beat them with sticks, and to maltreat them shamefully."</p>

<p>This decree was signed with the seal of Ilphonsus, King of
Aragon, as well as with the seal of Bishop Regimund of
Terragona, of the Bishop of Tiracisca, and of other bishops.
.The decree itself was made by William de Bassa, the king's
notary A. D. 1194. <i>Abr. Mell., 2d book, fol. 444. A. from
Fr. Pegna Direct. Inqaisit., part 2, Comment 39.</i> Also,
<i>Joan. Maviana Prefdt., in Lucani Tudens.</i></p>

<p>But what sort of execution followed upon this decree of
Ilphonsus against the poor Waldenses in the kingdom of Aragon,
it is not easy to know, since it seems that the historians of
this century</p>

</div><div id="300"> 

<p>have purposely passed by the cruelty exercised against them,
doubtless because they felt ashamed of the matter.</p>

<h2>ORIGIN OF THE INQUISITION AGAINST THE WAL DENSES AND ALBIGENSES, BY POPE INNO CENT III, A. D. 1198</h2> 

<p>A. D. 1198, Innocent III became pope in the place of
Celestine. At his consecration he applied to himself the words
which John the Baptist spoke of Christ, "He that hath the bride
is the bridegroom: but the friend of the bridegroom, which
standeth and heareth him, rejoiceth greatly because of the
bridegroom's voice."</p>

<p>Upon these words Innocent addressed his bridesmen, the
cardinals, archbishops and bishops as follows, "And am I not the
bridegroom, and every one of you a friend of the bridegroom?
Yea, I am the bridegroom; for I have the noble, rich, and
highly exalted, yea, the honorable, pure, gracious, and holy
Roman church for my bride, who, by the ordinance of God, is the
mother of all the faithful, and the supreme mistress over all
the churches. She is wiser than Sarah, more prudent than
Rebecca, more fruitful than Leah, more agreeable than Rachel,
more devout than Anna, purer than Susanna, more valiant than
Judith, more beautiful than Edessaea. Many daughters have
gathered great riches; but she has excelled them all. I have
espoused her sacramentally. This bride has not been wedded to
me portionless, but has given me her rich dowry, namely, the
fullness of spiritual and of temporal power." <i>Innocent.</i>
3, in <i>Consecra. Ponti f ., Serm.</i> 3, <i>page</i> 19.</p>

<p>Pope Innocent III was the first who instituted the office of
the inquisition, with ordained inquisitors; to which end he
also wrote a letter, in the first year of his popedom, on the
first day of April, to the archbishop of Auxitana; in which he
greatly complains of the enemies of St. Peter's Shiplet, as he
calls it, and then speaks as follows, "We desire that you and your fellow bishops, by your
prude4ce, shall guard the more vigorously against this malady
(meaning the doctrine of the Waldenses and Albigenses), and
oppose it the more strenuously, as you see the more reason to
fear that the sound part of the body may become infected by the
disease; lest by such contagions, which spread gradually like a
cancer, the minds of the faithful become infected by a general
corruption., "Therefore we send you brotherly love, and charge you most
earnestly by this apostolic letter, that you do your utmost, to
exterminate (all) heresy, and to banish from your province all
those that are contaminated therewith; and that against them
and all those who are contaminated therewith, or have any
fellowship with them, or who are openly suspected of having
familiar intercourse with them, you do not only exercise all
the rigor of church discinline_ without intervention of anneal.
but also. if necessary, subdue or punish them by the power of
the material sword, by princes or by the people."</p>

<p>On these words the papistic commentator remarks, in the
margin, "Up to this time, no inquisitors had yet been sent or
appointed by the pope."</p>

<p>In the same month, namely on the 21st of April, 1198, twenty
days after the writing of the first letter, Pope Innocent III
wrote another letter, not only to the above-mentioned Bishop of
Auxitana, but also to the archbishops of Aix, Narbonne, Vienne,
Arles, Ebredun, Tarragon, Lyons, etc., and at the same time
appointed one Reinerius and one Guido as his commissaries or
inquisitors, to apprehend those who sought to escape the
dominion of the Roman church. The contents of the letter were
directed against the Waldenses, and commanded that they should
be caught, as little foxes that spoil the vineyards. Finally he
commands them to be driven out of the country. <i>Ecent;ist.
de Cretal., lib. 1, pages 56, 57, edit. Colon.</i></p>

<p>In the following month, namely on the 13th of May, Innocent
wrote still another letter for the same purpose; in which he
again commanded that the little foxes should be caught, and
promises to send the inquisitors, adding, "We pray, admonish, and entreat you all together, in the
name of the Lord, and charge you, unto remission of sins, that
you receive them (the inquisitors, Reinerius and Guido),
kindly, aid them manfully and vigorously, and lend them a
helping hand by good counsel and with the deed., "But, as brother Reinerius, for urgent and important matter
of the church, has first, by order of the apostolical see, gone
to Spain, we will and command nevertheless, that you
archbishops and bishops, draw the spiritual sword, when
requested so to do by said brother Guido, against the heretics
whom he shall name to you; but let the lay power confiscate
their goods, and banish them from the country, and thus
separate the chaff from the wheat., "Furthermore, to all who in this great difficulty which now
threatens the church, shall faithfully and devotedly assist her
in maintaining the Christian faith, we grant the same
indulgence, pardon, or remission of sins, which we have granted
to all those who go on a pilgrimage to St. Peter's or St.
Jacob's church. Given at Rome, on the above day, <i>A. D.
1198." Page 98.</i></p>

<h2>FIVE MEN AND THREE WOMEN BURNT AT TROYES, IN CHAMPAGNE, A. D. 1200; AND SOME EXPELLED FROM METZ</h2> 

<p>About two years after Pope Innocent III had issued those
three bloody letters, for the persecution and suppression of
the true, defenseless Christians, who were commonly called
Waldenses, but by their enemies or persecutors, publicans and
sinners, it came to pass, in the last year of the twelfth
century namely A. D. 1200, that in the citv of</p>

</div><div id="301"> 

<p>Troyes, in Champagne, there were apprehended, by order of
the pope and the reigning authorities, eight persons, five men
and three women, who made the same confession as was stated
above with regard to the Waldenses, contradicting the authority
of the pope, infant baptism, the swearing of oaths, the office
of criminal authority, and whom the papistie author of the
large <i>Chronicle of the Netherlands</i> calls
<i>Popelitatnos.</i></p>

<p>However, these persons were not accused by the papists of
any evil works, but simply on account of their faith; in which
faith they desired to remain steadfast unto death, without, in
any wise departing from it. Hence they were all sentenced to
the fire, in said year, and offered up their bodies unto God as
a burnt sacrifice, having commended their souls into His
hands.</p>

<h2>THE EXPULSION OF THE CHRISTIANS FROM METZ, AND THE BURNING OF THEIR BOOKS</h2> 

<p>At the same time, many Christians at Metz, who professed the
same faith and were called Waldenses, were shamefully expelled
from Metz, and their books burnt, because they had translated
the Holy Scriptures into their mother tongue.</p>

<p>The papistic author of the large <i>Belgic Chronicle,</i>
upon the authority of the ancient historian Albericus, calls
them a Waldensian sect, and says, "That certain abbots were sent to preach against them; who
burnt some books translated from the Latin into their mother
tongue, and thus extirpated said sect. <i>Mon. Nuciensis Magn.
Chron. Belgicum, edit. Frankfort, A. D. 1607, page 189.</i></p>

<p>This serves to confirm the preceding narrative. We will now
conclude our account of the persecutions which occurred in the
twelfth century, and proceed to the thirteenth century.</p><br />

<br />

<h1>AN ACCOUNT OF THE HOLY BAPTISM IN THE THIRTEENTH  CENTURY: SUMMARY OF BAPTISM IN THE THIRTEENTH CENTURY</h1>

<p>[The thirteenth century is commenced with the thirteenth and
last <i>Centuria,</i> with which the Magdeburg Centuriators
have concluded their Ecclesiastical History; which is, as it
were, a mournful farewell air, on account of the lamentable
desolation caused by the Pope of Rome, in the worship of God.
Several Roman superstitions mentioned, which were commanded as
solemnly as the Word of God, and are called the baptism of
necessity, the baptism by women, heretics, etc.; etc.; also,
how to baptize a child that is in danger of death.</p>

<p>Some strange passages from Thomas Aquinas, touching infant
baptism; added decree of the bishops of Nemansa, as to how to
deal with a child, concerning which there may be doubt of its
having been baptized aright; also the formula of words to be
used by the Driest over the child. Explanation hat all this was
done to gain respect for infant baptism, among the common
people.</p>

<p>Of the true baptism, and how God, in the midst of these
storms, preserved His church.</p>

<p>The followers of the doctrine of Peter Bruis and Henry of
Toulouse, who, in many respects, concurred in the belief of the
Anabaptists of the present day, increase to such an extent, A.
D. <i>1206,</i> that in the provinces of Languedoc, Narbonne,
Gascony, but few people were found who did not adhere to their
doctrine; also the three articles of their doctrine against the
Roman church.</p>

<p>The ancient Waldenses again appear, A. D. <i>1218,</i> and,
though excommunicated by the pope in the bull of the Lord's
Supper, declare. against the swearing of oaths, taking the life
of evil-doers, the faith of the Roman church, ungodly priests,
the pope.</p>

<p>Circumstantial account, that these people, A. D.
<i>1230,</i> were so numerous, that one traveling from his
country to Milan, could lodge every night with one of his
persuasion.</p>

<p>The increase of the Waldenses in France and Flanders, is
again stated for, A. D. <i>1238.</i></p>

<p>Statement, for <i>1242,</i> that they not only confessed
their belief with the mouth, but also suffered for:t.</p>

<p>Thirty-eight years after, namely, A. D. <i>1280,</i> it is
shown, that their doctrine had penetrated not only into
Lombardy, but even into Sicily; several articles of their
doctrine described in full.</p>

<p>Their increase in various countries of Christendom is again
shown, for the year <i>1284,</i> as a proof that
notwithstanding the persecutions raised against them, they did
not diminish.</p>

<p>A certain doctrine of Alexander, namely, that baptism must
be administered on confession of faith; whereupon the Waldenses
and Albigenses are introduced once more, for the last time, and
it is stated that they considered infant baptism of no
virtue.</p>

<p>Conclusion, being Jacob Mehrning's reply to Mellinus,
respecting baptism.]</p>

<p>This is the century, writes Jacob Mehrning, with which the
Magdeburg Centuriators have closed their church history, etc.
Concerning this time they write in the preface as follows, "This
is the calamitous time, in which the Roman pope exalted his
might to the highest, in the occidental churches, and the Turk
his power, in the Orient; where, then, the divine and pure
doctrine became most abominably adulterated in every
respect.</p>

<p>Yea, the ground of doctrine, and all external ceremonies, as
well as all points of doctrine,-all these, without reservation,
the Pope of Rome would have under his control; in consequence
of which such a blindness and darkness arose among men, that
almost all of them took upon them the yoke, submitting whatever
they spoke or wrote, with more fear to the judgment of the
pope, than of God Himself, or of His church. Rules were
established. by which all controverted articles were</p>

<p><i>Page301</i></p>

<p>to be decided and judged; namely, the corrupted writings of
the fathers, and the decrees or resolutions of councils. The
Word of God entirely lost its honor, dignity and credit; yea,
it was thenceforth accepted only as far as the opinion of the
fathers and councils allowed. Moreover, the Word of God was no
longer expounded from the Holy Scriptures, but according to the
apprehension of their own imagination, etc. Besides, too much
concession was made to the heathen subtleties of Aristotle;
yea, with such folly, that the obscure writings of this heathen
were introduced into the schools, brought into the pulpit, and
mixed with the articles of faith, etc. <i>Jac. Mehyn. Bapt.
Hist., Q.</i> 717, from <i>Cent. Magd. X111, chap. 13.</i></p>

<p>As regards infant baptism, because the same was much
contradicted, yea, utterly rejected, at this time, by the
Waldenses and Albigenses, those of the Roman church, in order
to provide for this, and to maintain it, ordained various
things, called <i>baptism of necessity</i> (private baptism),
<i>baptism by women, baptism by heretics.</i></p>

<p>The Magdeburg Centuriators quote the following <i>(chap. 6,
fol.</i> 242) from a synodal book, written jointly by some
bishops, at Nemansa, A. D. 1251, "We command, that an infant,
just born and in peril of death, so that it can not be brought
to the priest, be baptized by the men present, whether in warm
or in cold water, but with no other liquid, and this in a
wooden, stone or other vessel. But if there be no men present,
let the women who are there baptize the child, or even the
father or the mother, in case there be no one else present, to
baptize the child." <i>Bapt. Hist.,</i> pp. 727, 728.</p>

<p>By these and similar means the Romanists at this time,
sought to maintain the credit of infant baptism, which was
greatly opposed; to which end tended also the words of Aquinas,
which are as follows, "The proper administrator of baptism shall
be a priest, whose province it is by virtue of 'his office, to
baptize; but in cases of necessity, not only a chaplain, but
also a layman, or a woman, yea, even a heathen or a heretic may
baptize, if he only observes the form of the church, and
purposes to do what the church does. But if a person, from
necessity, is baptized by such an one, he indeed receives the
sacrament, so that he need not be baptized again; but he does
not receive the grace of baptism, because he is considered as
not having been baptized aright," <i>Thorn. Aquin. de Art.,
Fid., chap.</i> 14, <i>in Bapt. Hist., Q.</i> 725.</p>

<p>In the same direction tends what is adduced in <i>Cent.
Magd., X111., chap.</i> 6, <i>fol.</i> 242, from the
above-mentioned synodal book of the bishops of Nemansa, "But,"
say they,"if a child, in case of necessity, has been baptized
by a layman, according to the form prescribed, we command, that
said child, if it survives, be brought as soon as possible to
the priest, who shall diligently examine how it was baptized;
and if he find that the form prescribed was not observed
aright, he shall baptize the child (again), according to the
form of the church. But if he doubt whether it was rightly
baptized, or not, since perhaps the baptizer did not properly
consider the words which he spoke in baptism, or because the
bystanders were not agreed in this, or because there is no
certainty whether it was baptized or not, the priest shall
baptize it with these words: 'If thou art baptized, I baptize
thee not again; but if thou art not baptized, I baptize thee in
the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost.'
In such doubtful cases, however, one witness is sufficient when
more can not be had." <i>Bapt. Hist.,</i> p. 728.</p>

<p>Who does not see that the Roman church, when infant baptism
was contradicted, endeavored by these and similar absurdities,
to make it appear to the common people as though infant baptism
were absolutely necessary to salvation, yea, so necessary that
rather than neglect it for want of a priest, even women, yea,
heathen and heretics whom they otherwise were accustomed to
burn, might baptize the infants if they only observed the form
of baptism employed by the church. O strange theology I Merely
to maintain the error of infant baptism, many other errors were
maintained.</p>

<h2>OF THE TRUE BAPTISM</h2> 

<p>Nevertheless, in the midst of these storms and billows of
antichrist, God preserved the ark of His church, so that many
persons still remained, who, notwithstanding the manifold
troubles and persecutions that came upon them on this account,
practiced and maintained the true worship of God, particularly
in opposition to infant baptism, the office of criminal
authority, the swearing of oaths, and almost all other
superstitions of the Roman church.</p>

<p>A. D. 1206.-In the beginning, yea, before the beginning of
this century, and so through a number of years, the doctrine of
the ancient Anabaptists increased not a little, which appeared
more particularly in the year 1206, when they had so increased
in many countries, that the wiles and power of the Roman church
were not sufficient to bring them to apostatize, much less to
exterminate them.</p>

<p>Concerning this, P. J. Twisek gives the following
description, "The adherents of the doctrine of Peter de Bruis
and Henry of Toulouse, Anabaptists, mentioned for the year
1135, which doctrine afterwards was also followed by the
Waldenses (see the year 1159), multiplied so greatly about this
time, namely, A. D. 1206, that few were found in the provinces
of Albi, Languedoc, Narbonne, Gascony, Rouergue, and Toulouse,
who did not adhere to said doctrine, notwithstanding Pope
Innocent III very cruelly opposed it. See account for the year
1198.</p>

<p>The principal points of their doctrine, besides others, were
these: 1. That the Roman church was the whore of Babylon. 2.
That her polity was impure and corrupted. 3. That the mass
was</p>

</div><div id="303"> 

<p>a work replete with wickedness, and instituted neither by
Christ nor for His disciples. <i>Chron. Q.</i> 523, col. 1
<i>and</i> 2, from <i>Chron. Nicol. Gill., fol.</i> 286
<i>Guil. Merul., fol.</i> 798, <i>Henr. Boxh., fol.</i> 22.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1218.-For this year mention is made by
Sebastian Franck, of the ancient Waldenses, whom he calls by
three different names. <i>The Poor, Insabbdtati and
Waldenses.</i> However, that they together were but one people,
has already been proved. Said author writes thus concerning
them, "These originated A. D. 1218, under Emperor Louis IV. They
are also excommunicated in the bull of the Lord's Supper, and
hold</p>

<p>1."That men ought not to swear at all, not even to the
truth.</p>

<p>2."That no judge, who would be a Christian may put to death
any one, not even a malefactor.</p>

<p>3."That the pious person who holds to the faith of the Roman
church, can not be saved.</p>

<p>4."That an ungodly priest can not consecrate.</p>

<p>5."That the church perished at the time of Sylvester.</p>

<p>6."That they are not subject, neither intend to be, to the
pope or to other prelates."</p>

<p>Then follow several other articles of their doctrine, which,
for the sake of brevity, we will pass over; for instance, that
they held, "That outside of their church there was no sacrament
nor baptism (which completely overthrows the infant baptism of
the Roman church); that they denied purgatory; that they
counted the mass, alms, and prayers for the dead of no value,
yea, that they regarded them .as the inventions of priestcraft;
that honoring the saints had not the slightest merit, and that
they do not hear our prayers in heaven."</p>

<p>These and similar articles are adduced there, from Aeneas,
Sylviusand other writers, as charges against the Waldenses; of
which the intelligent may judge. <i>Seb. Fr. Chron. der Rom.
Kett., fol.</i> 119, col. 4, <i>letter P.</i></p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1230.-It is stated that the Waldenses, whose
good confession we have already shown, declared at this time in
the proceedings which it seems they had against the pope, that
their numbers were so great in Germany, France and Italy, and
especially in Lombardy-where their teachers lived, to whom they
annually sent sustenance from other countries-that any one of
them traveling from his country to Milan, could lodge every
night with one of his own persuasion, whom they recognized by
certain marks on the door or upon the roof. P. <i>1. Tzcnsck,
Chron., Q.</i> 546, col. 2, from <i>Henr. Boxh., fol.</i>
25.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1238.-Or about 1239, the Waldenses had thus
increased in France and Flanders, that a certain Dominican
monk, Robert Boulgre, sent as inquisitor by Pope Gregory IX,
put to death a countless multitude of them; of which more will
be said hereafter. P.1. <i>Twisek, Chron., p.</i> 554, col.
1.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1242.-At this time, said people had to suffer
much from popery, on account of their faith and religion, which
in the bishopric of Toulouse alone, appeared in the case of
about two hundred persons, who held said belief, and were
called Waldenses; of whose imprisonment and death we shall
speak in the future. P. I. <i>Tzvisck, Chron.,</i> p. 557, col.
1.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1259.-At this time, or thereabouts, Gerard
Sagarellas, an Italian, but a doctor of Paris, wrote a book
against the Franciscans, whereupon Bonaventura, General of the
Franciscan order, replied; however, of this Gerard and his
belief, as also of that of the Waldenses, we shall speak more
fully hereafter. We would only stop to say that from this time
on, his disciples, the <i>Fratricelli,</i> or Little Brothers,
after the year 1285, called <i>Dulcinists,</i> began secretly
(from fear of persecution) to hold their meetings in the
mountains of Piedmont, and Novara, in Lombardy, professing the
doctrine of the Waldenses. However, from the different places
where they lived, they received different names; but the
appellation <i>Fratricelli</i> or <i>Frerots,</i> was
especially given them, because they called each other
<i>brethren in Christ;</i> nevertheless the mouths of the
scorners thus spoke only the truth, since Christ Himself so
called His disciples, saying, "All ye are brethren" (Matt.
23:8); and"I will declare thy name (O God) unto my brethren; in
the midst of the church will I sing praise unto thee" (Heb.
2:12) .</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1262.-At this time the Waldenses are again
mentioned, who lived in Lombardy, and in the country of Genoa,
and professed a sound profession, though they were called
heretics by the papists, and were oppressed and persecuted by
open decrees of the Roman see; which shall be spoken of more
fully elsewhere. Compare <i>Bzov., A. D. 1262. Art. 3, ex
Decret. Epist. Alexand. IV.,</i> with <i>A. Mell., Hist.,
fol</i>. 470, col. 2.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1280.-In this year it is recorded that said
people professing the above profession (namely, the Waldenses,
then called Waldois, after Waldo and his adherents, were
expelled from Lyons), so multiplied in Lombardy that their
doctrine, having spread in Italy, penetrated even into Sicily;
as is attested by the open letters emitted against them by the
Emperor Frederick II.</p>

<p>As regards their faith, the following articles, over and
above what has already been mentioned. respecting their views
against infant baptism, the office of criminal authority, the
swearing of oaths, etc., were laid to their charge, as can be
gleaned from the writings of Reinerius, the priest: That in the
matter of salvation we must believe only the holy Scriptures,
and in no wise depend on men. That said Scriptures contain
everything that is necessary to salvation; and that nothing is
to be received but what is commanded of God. That there is but
one Mediator (Christ), and, consequently, that the saints ought
not to be invoked. That there is no purgatory, but that all who
are justified in Christ, enter into life everlasting, and those
who do not believe, shall be cast into eternal death; thus</p>

</div><div id="304"> 

<p>denying that there is still besides a third or fourth
place.</p>

<p>They accepted and admitted but two sacraments, namely, holy
baptism and the holy Supper. They said that all masses,
particularly those for the dead, should be rejected; likewise
all human institutions, and that they ought not to be
considered necessary to salvation: They also taught that the
chanting, the hours, the fasting connected with certain days,
superfluous feast days, distinction of food, the many degrees
and orders of priests, monks, and nuns, the benedictions and
consecrations of creatures, vows, pilgrimages, in short, the
vast medley of ceremonies which in the times past had been
brought into vogue, ought to be abolished. They denied the
supremacy of the pope, especially as exercised by him over
secular government, and admitted no other degrees in church
offices than bishops, teachers (then called priests), and
deacons. They said that the Roman see is the true Babylon, and
the pope the fountain of all misery; that the marriage of the
priests (or teachers) is good, and necessary in the church;
that those who hear and rightly understand the Word of God, are
the true church, to which Christ has given the keys, to let the
sheep in, and to drive away the wolves."Behold here," says the
writer,"the sum of the doctrine of the Waldoes (or Waldenses),
which was oppugned by the enemies of truth, and on account of
which they, according to the testimony of their opponents, were
persecuted." P. 7. <i>Turisck, Chron., p.</i> 605, col. 2,
<i>and p.</i> 606, col. 1, from the <i>Staet der Kerchen, Jan.
Cresp., fol.</i> 314, 315, 316. <i>Merul., fol</i>. 843.
<i>Henr. Boxh., fol. 19,</i> 25.</p>

<p>A. D. 1284.-At this time the Waldenses, according to Twisck,
multiplied more and more in France and other countries of
Christendom, though they were sought with craftiness and
cruelly persecuted, and even previously every means and all
diligence had been employed to utterly extirpate them; which
greatly astonished certain bishops of that time, and also
certain lawyers of Avignon, in certain consultations held
against them, and still extant. P. <i>J. Twisck, Chron., p.</i>
611, col. 2.</p>

<p>Concerning the form or mode of baptism, Alexander* (p. 4, q.
11, m. 1), in this century, says, "Baptism shall be administered
in confession of</p>

<p>faith in the Holy Trinity." <i>Jac. Mehr., Bapt. Hist.,
p.</i> 726.</p>

<p><i>Centurid</i> 13, of the <i>Magdeburg Centuriators, cap.
5,</i> fol. 216, 217, from Cesarius, states"That the Waldenses
and Albigenses rejected baptism at this time, saying that it
was inefficacious and useless; which they, as Jacob Mehrning
writes, understood of infant baptism, which is administered
without instruction and faith; for the Waldenses had a very
high regard for the baptism of -Christ, as administered
according to His ordinance." <i>Bapt. Hist., pp.</i> 733,
734.</p>

<br /><cite>* We will say nothing of this Alexander, but
merely speak of his doctrine. NOTE. A. D. 1287.-Probus, Bishop
of Tullo, was at this time so enlightened of God that he not
only opposed Pope Honorius IV, but also delivered an excellent
oration, in which he freely exposed the errors of the papists.
Compare <i>Catal. Test. fol.</i> 654, with the 13th book <i>van
den Ondergang,</i> p. 614, col. 1.</cite> 

<p>A. D. 1299.-In the year 1299 certain Albigenses and
Waldenses, called <i>Fratricelli,</i> or <i>Little Brothers</i>
(of whose faith and life we have spoken elsewhere), became so
odious to Boniface VIII, Pope of Rome, on account of their
uprightness, which the papists called falseness, that he
declared them heretics; but as we intend elsewhere to speak
more fully of their belief and walk among men, we will content
ourselves here with merely mentioning them; it being sufficient
for us that these people and their doctrine existed until the
very close of this century. See in the large <i>Christen
Martelaersboeck,</i> edition 1619, fol. 471, from <i>Trithem.
Chron. Hirsaug.</i></p>

<p>Proceeding to the close of the century, we will close with
the conclusion of Jacob Mehrning, which is a reply to A.
Mellinus, who did his best to show that the Waldenses did not
well accord with the Anabaptists in the article of baptism.
Mehrning replies to him as follows, "Abraham Mellinus (in his
large <i>Nederlandtsch Martelaers</i> book) dared to say: 'The
Waldenses would not agree with the so-called Anabaptists in the
article of infant baptism.' But the good man forgets that he
himself has adduced testimonies from Bernard, Peter
Cluniacensis, and from the Magdeburg Centuries,* which refute
and condemn this supposed error of the ancient Waldenses,
namely, that they should have believed in infant baptism."
<i>Bapt. Hist., p.</i> 736.</p>
<a name="303"></a>
   <h2>AN ACCOUNT OF THOSE WHO SUFFERED IN THE THIRTEENTH
CENTURY</h2> 

<h2>SUMMARY OF THE MARTYRS IN THE THIRTEENTH CENTURY</h2> 

<p>[The way and entrance to the martyrs of this century is
through the valleys of Albi and throughout France, England, and
other countries, where the pious witnesses of Jesus laid down
their lives for the evangelical truth.</p>

<p>From the year 1209 throughout this century, crusades are
preached in the name of the pope; which were the cause of the
destruction of thousands of Albigenses, who lived quietly and
peaceably under certain papistic authorities; for certain
reasons, however, we have not finished this account.</p>

<p>Remarks with eight reasons unanimously indicating the
nonresistant principles of the true Albigenses; nevertheless,
for important reasons, we have placed the account of their
martyrdom for the</p>

<br /><cite>* The following words are obscure in the author;
hence we experienced difficulty in translating them.-Van.
Braght.</cite> 

</div><div id="305"> 

<p>most part in a marginal note, for the years 1210 and
1211.</p>

<p>One hundred and eighty persons called Albigenses, burnt
without the castle Minerve, A. D. 1210.</p>

<p>Sixty of those people end their lives by fire, for their
faith, at Casser, about A. D. 1211.</p>

<p>About one hundred persons, who confessed the same doctrine,
burnt alive in a tower at Cassas, about the close of A. D.
1211.</p>

<p>Fifty of their fellow believers likewise lose their lives by
fire, at Chastelnau d'Ari, about the close of A. D. 1211.</p>

<p>Over four hundred persons, who professed the same
profession, though called Induti, at Lavaur, or Vaurum, rather
suffer themselves to be burnt to death by the terrible flames
than accept the Roman faith.</p>

<h2>ACCOUNT PROPER OF THE HOLY MARTYRS</h2> 

<p>Great persecutions of the believers, A. D. 1206. A man, at
London, in England, burnt alive for the faith of the Waldenses,
A. D. 1210; and twenty-four persons at Paris, in France,
likewise put to death by fire, for the same religion.</p>

<p>In the year 1212, about one hundred persons called
Waldenses, are put to death by fire at Strasburg; thirty-nine
at Bingen, and eighteen at Mentz.</p>

<p>Account of a cruel inquisition, A. D. 1214, over the
doctrine of the Waldenses; Conrad of Marpurg, the chief
inquisitor, and his mode of examination with red-hot iron, as
well as with hot and cold water; also, the oath which the
inquisitors in the bishopric of Utrecht were wont to put to
those who were then called heretics, abot A. D. 1215.</p>

<p>About eighty persons called Waldenses, burnt for the faith,
at Strasburg; also some Christians at Toulouse, about A. D.
1215.</p>

<p>Gerard de la Motte, a deacon of the Christians called
Albi-Waldenses, with some of his fellowbelievers, sacrificed by
fire, at Borriens, A. D. 1227.</p>

<p>Several papal statutes and ordinances against the Waldenses,
related for the year 1229.</p>

<p>Severe persecution, through the Inquisition, in Germany,
where very many Waldenses are burnt for the faith, A. D.
1230.</p>

<p>Three decrees of Emperor Frederick II are successively
described, for the year 1230; another severe persecution of the
Anabaptistic Waldenses, in Germany, A. D. 1231.</p>

<p>Nineteen persons of the same profession, burnt in the
bishopric of Toulouse, A. D. 1232; also, two hundred and
twenty-four in a place near Toulouse, A. D. 1243; a rigorous
inquisition in the aforesaid bishopric, A. D. 1251, which was
carried also into the following year.</p>

<p>Decree of Pope Urban III against the Waldenses and
Albigenses in Lombardy and about Genoa, A. D. 1262; great
persecutions, about A. D. 1280, 1283, 1284.</p>

<p>Gerard Sagarellus burnt at Parma, A. D. 1285; Herman,
Andrew, and Guillemette [Wilhelmina], exhumed, A. D. 1299.
Conclusion.]</p>

<p>The valleys of Albi, the region around Toulouse, yea, all
France, England, and other kingdoms, furnish us, during this
century, many martyrs, who, though, they, with reference to the
severity of their tortures, according to the flesh, were
pitiable and most miserable, suffered nevertheless with good
cheer, yea, with joy, in consideration of their sure hope and
unshaken confidence in the Lord, as being their shield and
exceeding great reward.*</p>

<p>As regards the persecutions that occurred in this century,
against the Waldenses and Albigenses, they by far surpass all
other persecutions of which we read in the preceding centuries;
for it seemed now as if the very furies of hell, so to speak,
had broken loose, to destroy all believers, yea, almost the
whole earth.</p>

<p>In the years 1209-12, 1225, 1234, yea, throughout the entire
thirteenth century, crusades, or socalled holy, voluntary
preparations of war were preached, by order of the pope, for
the extermination of the Waldenses and Albigenses, all over the
world, but more particularly in the kingdom of France.</p>

<p>These crusades consisted in great armies of Roman Catholics,
who voluntarily enlisted in this socalled holy warfare; each
distinguished by a white cross on his breast, or one of white
cloth sewed on his garment; on account of which crosses these
armies were called Crusades.</p>

<p>But that they might acquit themselves the more courageously
and intrepidly, in exterminating the Albigenses and Waldenses,
yea, that they might suffer none of them to remain alive, but
kill them by fire, sword, gallows, and other means, the pope
most solemnly promised to all who by so doing should meet
death, or fall by the weapons of the princes seeking to protect
the Albigenses and Waldenses, full remission of all their past
sins, yea, that they should straightway go to heaven.</p>

<p>This had the effect, that countless multitudes flocked
together, as it were, to the honor of God, and for the
extirpation of the so-called heresies, in order to obtain
forgiveness of sins, and thus dying find salvation; and having,
under certain chieftains, been formed into armies they marched
forth and engaged alone in murdering, burning, desolating and
tyrannizing among the Waldenses and Albigenses, sparing not
even the infant in the cradle. It is impossible to relate how
great a multitude of these innocent people perished, and under
what severe torments, simply on account of their true
faith.</p>

<br /><cite>* Gen. 15:1.</cite> 

</div><div id="306"> 

<h2>REMARKS IN REGARD TO THE DISTINCTION OF THE PEOPLE CALLED ALBIGENSES OR WALDENSES</h2> 

<p>I deem it necessary here, to insert a caution, which I
desire that it be borne in mind wherever the Albigenses and
Waldenses (who are introduced as witnesses of our faith) are
spoken of, namely, that we here speak only of such people as,
besides the confession of their and our most holy faith
respecting the points necessary to salvation, were opposed to
war, and willingly and patiently, as defenseless sheep of
Christ appointed for the slaughter, entered the path of death
through manifold torments inflicted upon them by the enemies of
the faith, to the glory of God, the edification of their
neighbor, and the salvation of their own souls.</p>

<p>It is true, that in ancient histories mention is made of
people who, though improperly, were called Waldenses or
Albigenses, who resisted, yea slew their enemies; but of such
we do not speak here, indeed, all of whom there is reason so to
think, we would positively pass by.*</p>

<p>It must also be observed here, that the princes who had
taken the defenseless Albigenses and Waldenses under their
protection, and even their soldiers, were sometimes (through
sheer ignorance) called Albigenses or Waldenses, simply because
they protected them. However, of these we do not here speak,
but only of those who, according to their confession, lived
peaceably and meekly under their protection.</p>

<p>That many of them dwelt, as defenseless sheep, under the
government of such princes, and that on this account war was
sometimes waged by their enemies against these princes, so that
one had to suffer with the other, is evident from the accounts
of the ancients; however, we have, to the utmost of our
ability, distinguished them; so that as far as we know, not one
of those whom we have mentioned as martyrs, had any part or lot
with revenge, much less with war.</p>

<p>In addition to this, I will briefly adduce from ancient
writers, for the benefit of the truth-seeking reader, several
arguments, showing that the Waldenses and Albigenses dwelt
defenselessly and in all quiet under the protection of their
magistracies; and that in consequence of this, said magistrates
were also called Waldenses and Albigenses, and war waged
against them; who, when they resisted, were the cause that it
was said that the Albigenses or Waldenses had resisted, yea,
actually fought.</p>

<p>First Argument.-Abraham Mellinus, from In<i>nocent III,
epist. 84,</i> states: That the pope, through letters, as well
as legates, gave orders, throughout France, to the
ecclesiastics as well as the seculars, to exterminate the
Albigenses; however, Raymond, count of Toulouse had already
taken upon him to defend the Albigenses. For this reason Pope
Innocent</p>

<br /><cite>* In those times there was a sect sometimes,
though improperly, called Albigenses. Their proper name,
however, was "Ruptuarii' or" Routiers" that is, desolators
or rioters, because they made resistance. See 2d book of the
Persecutions, fol. 460, col. 4. But of such we have purposely
avoided to speak, as they do not belong here. </cite>
<p>wrote to the
Archbishop of Narbonne, and to other bishops, abbots, and
prelates, and among these especially to Radulph, canon of
Narbonne, and also to the abbots of the great valley, and of
Cisteaux, that they should speak to the count and persuade him
to persecute the heretics (that is, the Albigenses); but, if he
should reject their counsel, that they should excommunicate
him; both of which took place. <i>Second book, fol. 449,</i>
Col. 1.</p> 

<p><i>Second Argument</i>.-Chassanion states: That shortly
after the departure of the count of Toulouse and the King of
Aragon, the abbot of Cisteaux, first legate of the pope, sent
the bishop of Toulouse in France, to preach the crusade against
Count Raymond, and to instigate the whole world against him and
his country, saying that he rebelled against the (Roman
Catholic) church, and protected all the heretics (namely, the
Albigenses) that were within his territory. <i>Chassan.</i>
Hist., lib. 3, <i>cap. 10.</i></p>

<p><i>Third</i> Argument.-The legate of the pope summoned
Raymond, count of Toulouse, to Arles, indicating that his case
(namely, his protecting the Albigenses) would be considered
there. When he came, several articles by which he was to be
governed were laid before him; one of which was: That he should
expel from his territories all the heretics (namely, the
Waldenses, who lived quietly ,and peaceably under him),
together with their adherents, friends, and kindred. Also: That
he should deliver up into the hands of the legate, and Count
Montfort, all those whom they should name to him (namely, those
who professed the same belief), that they might do with them
according to their pleasure; and this within one year.
<i>Chassan., Hist. Alb., lib. 3, cap.</i> 9, 10. A. <i>Mell.,
fol. 455,</i> Col. <i>1.</i></p>

<p><i>Fourth</i> Argument.-Robert of Auxerre concludes his
Year-book with the papal excommunication against Raymond, count
of Toulouse, whose territory was given as a prey to all who
wished</p>

<p>because he was found (says the writer) to extend favor and
assistance to the heretics (the Albigenses and Waldenses), ,and
was, therefore, declared a renegade of the faith and an open
enemy of the (Roman) church. <i>Chron. Altiss</i>., A. <i>D.
1211, Deceased A</i>. D. <i>1212.</i></p>

<p>Who does not see that this Count was excommunicated simply
bcause he permitted these socailed heretics, termed Albigenses
and Waldenses, to live under him? on account of which his whole
territory was given for a prey.</p>

<p><i>Fifth Argument.-In the</i> year <i>1212</i> the city of
Penne, <i>or</i> Pene, in the territory of Aix la Chapelle, was
besieged by the count of Montfort; but before the enemy
arrived, the governor burnt the suburb, and retreated with his
people into the citadel. Finally the city was taken, and
seventy soldiers who were in it ( the writer says) were hanged;
but all the rest (namely, the defenseless) that maintained the
error of the Albigenses, were burnt. <i>Thuan. Hist., lib. 6,
A. D. 1550. Forte ex hincentio Bello hacensi and Petro
Sarn.</i></p>

</div><div id="307"> 

<p>From this also it certainly is more than evident that the
Albigenses lived quietly under their magistrates, and offered
no resistance to the enemies; hence they were not hanged, like
the conquered soldiers, but burnt as heretics.</p>

<p><i>Sixth Argument.-"Thus the</i> Count of Montfort," writes
Paul Emilius,"scoured the whole country, and brought all the
cities and castles, especially in Agenois and Rouergue, under
his power. Not because they all held an ungodly doctrine (that
is, were Albigenses), but in order that they might not be able
to protect or assist the ungodly," that is, the heretics, as
they called them. <i>Hist. Gal., lib. 6,</i> in <i>Phill., Aug.
2.</i></p>

<p>Here it is also evident beyond contradiction, that the
Albigenses who lived under those magistrates, did not only
carry no arms, but also held a belief entirely different from
that of their authorities; for, otherwise they would have
called both by the same name, that is, <i>ungodly,</i> but as
it is, only the Albigenses are called ungodly, while of the
magistrates it is stated, that they did not hold this doctrine;
although sometimes the magistrates and the subjects were called
by the same name, as has been said.</p>

<p><i>Seventh Argument.-This is</i> still more confirmed by the
words with which the Dominican friars in those times were
accustomed to conclude their sermons, saying, "Behold, here ye
can perceive, most beloved, how great the wickedness of the
heretics (the Albigenses) is, yea, what is still more, they
have accepted the protection of the secular lords." <i>hinbert.
Burgund. Sean.., part 2, Serm. 64.</i></p>

<p>From this, and similar passages which we might adduce, it is
sufficiently evident that not the Albigenses or Waldenses, but
the magistrates under whom they lived, had recourse to arms and
carried on war; hence, they do wrong, who confound the
Albigenses with their magistrates, and lay, whether through
ignorance or on purpose, what their magistrates did, to the
charge of the Albigenses. Their own confession has already been
given; in which they confess: That they follow the example of
Christ, who exercised no temporal jurisdiction or dominion.</p>

<p><i>Eighth Argument.-But, for</i> still further proof of said
matter, we will add the following, contained in the
<i>Introduction to the Martyrs' Mirror, edition 1631, p.
50,</i> col. 1, "A. D., . . . there existed in Toulouse in
France, the Albigenses, so called because they arose
principally in the province of Albi; otherwise they were of the
same doctrine and belief as the former (the Waldenses); hence
it is presumable, that they were one people notwithstanding
that they are called by different names.", "Baronius writes that their belief, among other things, was:
That infant baptism was not necessary to salvation; that an
unworthy, sinful priest could not administer the sacrament;
that no one might become a bishop, who was not blameless; that
no churches ought to be erected to the honor of God or the
saints; that confession (of sins) could be made to any one;
that it was not lawful to swear any oath, etc.; all of which
things they said could be found in the New Testament, to which
alone they held." From <i>Baron., A. D. 1176, num. 1, 2,
3.</i></p>

<p>Continuing, we find, in the afore-mentioned <i>Introduction
(sane page, col. 2),</i> respecting their views against war,
and in refutation of those who impute this to them, the
following words, "For this reason we must also consider, that
when we read here of the wars waged against them, and the
resistance which they offered, this . . . is to be understood
of the princes and magistrates who took them under their
protection; as the King of Aragon, the count of Toulouse, the
count of Foix, and others; further, of those who were employed
under the authority of the afore-mentioned persons; but it is.
neither probable nor reasonable, that such people should be
counted among them, who, according to Baronius, regulated their
conduct only by the New Testament, which they observed so
strictly, that they would not even swear an oath, which is much
less than to engage in war."</p>

<p>This is confirmed by what Baronius says, namely, that war
was waged by the pope and his adherents, against the aforesaid
princes, for the reason that the latter would not persecute the
Albigenses, and expel them from their territory;'but when this
was done, after the said princes had been brought into
subjection, the Albigenses, he writes, soon became extinct.
<i>Bar., A. D. 1210, num. 3,</i> and <i>1228, nuns,. 3.</i></p>

<p>This could not have been the case if so numerous a people
had opposed their persecutors with force of arms.
<i>Introduction, page 51, col. 1.</i></p>

<h2>DEMONSTRATION OF A PLAIN DISTINCTION BE TWEEN THE ALBIGENSES AND THEIR MAGIS TRATES AND FELLOW CITIZENS</h2> 

<p>The last-mentioned writer, proceeding to the violence and
vexation suffered by the Albigenses from the
papists-ecclesiastics as well as seculars, makes mention of
Raymond, count of Toulouse, and of the count of Turenne,
saying: That they went to Peter, the cardinal and legate of the
pope, in order that they should kill or slay the heretics (the
Albigenses), if the latter should not be converted to the Roman
church through the cardinals' preaching. Having arrived at
Toulouse, they made the citizens swear an oath that they would
name all the Albigenses they knew. Many of them were now
betrayed, and among these, also Peter Moranus, one of their
principal men. When he was examined, he freely confessed his
faith; and was instantly condemned as a heretic, and all his
property confiscated. <i>Introduction, p. 51,</i> col. 1, 2,
from <i>Baron., A. D. 1178, num. 2.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-From the afore-mentioned eight arguments, but
especially from this last demonstration, it appears
incontrovertibly, that a great distinction</p>

</div><div id="308"> 

<p>must be made, between the Albigenses and their magistrates,
as well as the citizens among whom they lived in the cities; so
that whenever resistance, war or conflict are spoken of, in
which the inhabitants of this or that city or place engaged, it
is to be understood throughout of the magistrates and their
soldiers, who guarded said cities or places, as also, of the
common citizens; but not of the true Albigenses, since these,
in accordance with their faith, as has already been
sufficiently stated, exercised no revenge or resistance against
any one, but lived peaceably under their magistrates; to whom
they also, as was proper, paid their taxes.</p>

<p>However, that we may not give offense to our fellow
believers, if any should entertain a different opinion in
regard to this matter, although it has been sufficiently
explained by us, we shall adduce the principal confessors who
suffered in the besieged cities for the doctrine of the
Albigensian religion, not as infallible witnesses, but as
incidental matters; which the kind reader will please regard as
having been done by us from no other motive than Christian
prudence.</p>

 
<h1>ONE HUNDRED AND EIGHTY PERSONS CALLED ALBIGENSES, BURNT WITHOUT THE CASTLE MINERVE</h1>

<p>In the year of our Lord 1210, a large sacrifice of
believers, called Perfecti or Albigenses took place near the
castle Minerve; so that at one time about one hundred and
eighty persons, men as well as women, who, forsaking the Roman
antichrist, desired to adhere steadfastly to Jesus Christ and
His divine truth, were publicly burnt; these, having commended
their souls to God, are now waiting for the crown and reward of
the faithful.</p>

<p>As to the manner in which this occurred, different papistic
writers give this account: That the pope of Rome caused a
second crusade or campaign to be preached, in order to
annihilate with might and main the Albigenses wherever they
might be concealed; promising forgiveness of sins, yea, eternal
salvation to all who in this campaign should well acquit
themselves in murdering and burning the Waldenses.</p>

<p>In the meantime there were in the castle of Minerve very
many Albigenses called <i>Perfecti (perfect ones),</i> who
resided under the lord of the castle, and were protected by
him.</p>

<p>This castle, situated on a high rock, was besieged by the
legate of the pope, and so hard pressed, that the lord of the
same was finally, through lack of water, compelled to
surrender. The legate commanded that all who would not unite
with the Roman church, should he put to death.</p>

<p>Those within, however, (namely, the defenseless Albigenses)
said, "We do not wish to forsake our faith; we reject your Roman
faith; your labor is vain, for neither death nor life shall
cause us to depart from our faith." Such was the answer and
resolution of the men, who were all assembled together in one
house. The women, who were in another house, were found by the
abbot so courageous and undaunted that with all his fine words
he could make no impression upon them.</p>

<p>The count of Montfort then caused them all (namely, these
confessors) to come out of the castle, the men as well as the
women, and having ordered a large fire to be kindled, he had
them all cast into it, to the number of one hundred and forty;
all of whom were burnt alive, except three women, who, having
apostatized through weakness, escaped the fire. All the others
that were in the castle (namely, the lord with his servants and
soldiers, who had guarded the castle), complied with the will
of the papal legate.</p>

<p>Peter Sarnensis, speaking of these people that were put to
death, says, that these hundred and forty martyrs were of the
Albigenses called Perfecti; and adds, that they would rather be
burned alive, than unite with the Roman church. In <i>Hist.
Albigens.</i> Also, loh. <i>Chassan., Hist. Albig., lib. 3,
carp. 7, ex Hist. Languedoc.</i></p>

<p>From the account of Robert of Auxerre, a strong papist, who
wrote at that time, and, it seems, was an eyewitness of the
steadfast death of these people, it appears, that about forty
more than the preceding writers have stated were burned;. which
might well be the case, namely, that the former first, and the
latter afterwards, confessed themselves to be of the same
faith, and thus were punished alike with death. He writes as
follows, "In A. D. 1210 a great expedition was undertaken by our
bishops, as well as by the lords and princes of the realm, and
by the common people. This expedition was a very noted one, and
was undertaken from pure devotion, or by vow; partly through
the zeal of faith enkindled in the hearts of the believers (so
he calls the papists), against the destroyers of the faith
(thus he calls the true Albigenses), and partly, in order to
merit the forgiveness of sins, promised by the apostolical see
(the Pope of Rome); hence they marched with their assembled
army before the castle of Minerve, which was a very strong
place."</p>

<p>At last the besieged offered to surrender; but when it was
proclaimed to all, that those who would turn from their heresy,
should be left free and unmolested, about one hundred and
eighty were found (namely, Albigenses) who rather suffered
themselves to be burnt alive, than desist from their heretical
wickedness (thus he calls their true faith).</p>

<p>Those who witnessed this, he writes, were astonished at the
inexorable obstinacy of these miserable people, who would not
listen to any salutary admonitions (thus he calls the fables of
the papists), because their reason was smitten, and thus they
voluntarily hastened to the punishment of death. <i>Rob. Aux.
Chronol. Altiss., A. D. 1210,</i> compare with A. <i>Mell., 2d
book, fol. 454, col. 2.</i></p>

</div><div id="309"> 

<h2>SIXTY PERSONS CALLED ALBIGENSES, BURNT FOR THE FAITH, AT CASSER</h2> 

<p>In the year <i>1211,</i> or a little before, when the count
of Montfort, by order of the pope, was exercising great tyranny
for the purpose of exterminating the Albigenses, he learned,
through an informer, or in some other way, that in a place
called Casser, there resided many of these people, under the
protection of the lord of said place. He therefore went to lay
siege to it; but those within (namely, the garrison), seeing
that they would not be able to hold out long, notwithstanding
the place was tolerably strong otherwise, capitulated, with
this agreement, that they would deliver into the hands of the
enemy, those called heretics (or Albigenses); these the bishops
sought to persuade to renounce their faith, but they could not
prevail upon them in the least; in consequence of which sixty
persons were burnt for the sake of that religion. Chris.
<i>Hist., Albig., lib. 3,</i> compared with <i>A. M. Hist.,
fol. 456, cot. 4.</i></p>

<h2>ABOUT ONE HUNDRED PERSONS CALLED ALBI GENSES, OR HERETICS, BURNT FOR THE FAITH IN A TOWER AT CASSAS</h2> 

<p>About the close of the year <i>1211,</i> it is recorded, the
legate of the pope, having gone forth utterly to extirpate all
those that professed the confession of the above-mentioned
Albigenses, was apprised, that over eighty, but according to
others, about a hundred of that sect or heresy, as it was
called, were concealed on, or in, a tower at Cassas. They had
been sent thither by those of Rogueville (who, it seems, were
not willing that any of these defenseless people should remain
among them), that they might save their lives, until this
bloodthirsty man should have passed by. Having learned this,
the legate very easily surprised, captured and demolished this
tower, and caused all those that were in it-like sheep for the
slaughter in .the fold, who would not abandon their faith, to
be burned alive as heretics. <i>Chass., lib. 3, cap. 15.</i>
Also, A. <i>Mell., 2d book, fol. 457, cot. 1.</i></p>

<h2>FIFTY PERSONS CALLED ALBIGENSES, BURNT FOR THE FAITH, AT CHASTELNAU D'ARI, AT THE CLOSE OF THE YEAR <i>1211</i></h2> 

<p>This fire of the papal legate continued, like a thunderbolt,
to burn and scorch among the defenseless flock of Christ,
called Albigenses, or heretics, who had concealed themselves
here and there, wherever they thought they might be secure.</p>

<p>In the meantime, there were fifty of these people at
Chastelnau d'Ari, shut up and closely besieged, together with
all that were in that place; by the count of Montfort, the
commander-in-chief of the papal legate. Finally, the place
having been taken, all these persons, as they would not depart
from their faith, were burnt alive, and thus, having com mended
their souls unto God, they gave their bodies for a burnt
sacrifice.</p>

<p>Chassanion writes, that when the Count of Montfort had taken
the city of Chastelnau d'Ari, fifty persons were found in it,
who would rather be burnt alive than returned- to the papistic
religion. Compare <i>Chassau., lib. 3,</i> cap. <i>16,</i> with
<i>A. Mell., 2d book,</i> fol. <i>457, cot. 1.</i></p>

<h2>OVER FOUR HUNDRED PERSONS CALLED INDUTI, OR ALBIGENSES, BURNT FOR THEIR FAITH, AT LAVAUR, OR VAURUM, A. D. <i>1211</i></h2> 

<p>Previously we stated, that the Albigenses, whose confession
we showed to be good and Scriptural, were called by various
names. Besides those names already explained, they were also
called <i>Induti,</i> or <i>hestiti,</i> that is, the
<i>clothed,</i> or <i>covered,</i> either because they had to
cover or conceal themselves on account of persecution, or for
some other reason.</p>

<p>This, at least, is certain, that they are compared by
<i>Mellinus, 2d book, page 443, cot. 3,</i> to the Albigenses,
called Perfecti; who were also styled, as he shows, <i>Boni
homines,</i> that is, <i>good men,</i> because they, as it
seems, were good and upright in their walk. Very many of these
good, upright, and not less believing people, were burnt for
the faith, as heretics, suffering it innocently and patiently,
in the city of Lavaur, also called Vaurum, about the year
<i>1211.</i> Their number, according to ancient chronicles,
amounted to over four hundred.</p>

<p>Nicholas Bertrand quotes the following from the papistic
chronicle of William de Podio Laurentii, "Simon, count of Montfort, hastened with the Lord's (the
Roman Pope's) army, to lay siege to the fortress or city, of
Vaurum, which Amerius, lord of Montreal and Laurack, brother of
the lady Geralda, had undertaken to defend for her sake. Within
there was no small number of those heretics called Induti, who
did not always reside there, but had congregated at that time
from distant countries.", "The army of God, therefore," he writes, (namely, the army
of the pope)"encompassed the fortress, or city, and gave the
besieged no rest night and day. Those within perceiving, . . .
surrendered unconditionally to the beleaguers."</p>

<p>He then goes on to relate how they dealt with those who had
guarded the city, or fortress, and coming then to the
above-mentioned people who, to live according to their faith,
had resided quietly and peaceably among the other inhabitants,
he says, "The heretics called Induti, that is, <i>clothed,</i> about
three hundred, others write, over four hundred, he caused to be
burned alive." <i>Nich. Bertrand de Gest. Tholosan., fol.
27.</i> The lives of the common people, however, were spared
upon certain conditions.</p>

<p>A large fire was made of wood, says Robert Altissiodorensis,
and the choice was given to all, either to turn from their
errors (so he speaks, after the manner of the papists), or to
be burnt alive; whereupon a great number, over four hun-</p>

</div><div id="310"> 

<p>dred, as stated, were found who were so obstinate in their
error (as he calls their true faith) that they would rather be
burnt than confess the Roman Catholic faith. <i>Chronol., page
106.</i> Also A. <i>Mell., 2d book, fol. 456,</i> Col. <i>2,
3.</i></p>

<h2>COMMENCEMENT PROPER OF THE HISTORY OF THE MARTYRS OF THIS CENTURY GREAT PERSECUTION OF THE BELIEVERS,IN THE YEAR <i>1206</i></h2> 

<p>In the year <i>1206,</i> it is recorded, that Pope Innocent
III exercised great cruelty against the followers of the
doctrine of Peter Bruis and Henry of Toulouse, who, among other
things, rejected infant baptism, the mass, and
transubstantiation, as has already been stated. The manner,
however, in which this cruelty was manifested toward them, is
not expressed. P. 1. <i>Twisck, Chron., page 523,</i> Col.
1.</p>

<p>Undoubtedly, the pope then caused to be carried out what he
had threatened, A. D. 1198, in his three letters, against the
Waldenses and others that were called heretics, namely, that
they should be spoiled of their goods, expelled from the
country, and the material sword of the princes used against
them. In regard to said three letters and threats, see A.
<i>Mell., 2d book, fol. 444,</i> Col. <i>2, 3,</i> and fol<i>.
445, cot. 1.</i></p>

<h2>A MAN BURNT ALIVE, AT LONDON, IN ENGLAND, FOR THE FAITH OF THE WALDENSES, A. D. <i>1210</i></h2> 

<p>In various ancient histories we read, that not only in
France and Germany, but also in England, the doctrine of the
Albi-Waldenses* obtained a foothold, so that in said Island,
especially at London, numbers were found, who made this
profession, to the great detriment of the Roman religion. On
this account, the popish clergy, unable to brook this, became
filled with great bitterness against them, so that they, it
seems, determined to punish one of them in such an exemplary
manner, that it would ter the rest, and cause them to leave the
country; or at least, to desist from confessing and speaking
otherwise than those of the Roman Catholic church.</p>

<p>Thereupon they apprehended one of their number, whose name
we have not been able to learn because they, afterwards
perhaps, were ashamed of the deed, and in order to,give their
design some semblance [of justice], they charged him with
having reviled the clergy, and that he, consequently, was not
fit to live, but deserved to die an ignominious and miserable
death. He was accordingly burnt alive, A. D. <i>1210.</i></p>

<p>Concerning this, Balaeus writes, from the Chronicle of
London: That the Albigenses in England</p>

<br /><cite>* Albigenses, says the writer; however they were
of the profession of the Waldenses; but because of their origin
from the province of Albf, they were called Albigenses. </cite> 

<p>(according to the Papists) reviled the clergy, and that in
consequence thereof a man was burnt alive by them, at London,
A. D. <i>1210. Cent. 3, Script. Britt., in Append. ad Gualterum
Horganium, page 258,</i> compared with <i>A. Mell. Hist., fol.
455,</i> Col. <i>4.</i></p>

<p>P. J. Twisck, having given some account of many Waldensian
martyrs at Strasburg, for the year <i>1210,</i> proceeds
thus, "The Chronicle of London states, that also in England a
great number, namely, of Waldenses, or, as has been stated,
Albigenses, who were of the same faith, were found, and that
one of them was burnt at London." <i>Chron., page 526,</i> Col.
1.</p>

<p>NOTE.-P. J. Twisck, after relating said matter concerning
the Albigensian martyr, at London, adds, "A. D. <i>1210.</i> In
the city of Narbonne one hundred and thirty persons were put to
death by the priests, because they reproved the great abuses
and idolatry of the popes. In the same year there were also
killed at Paris, in France, twenty-four martyrs and witnesses
of the truth, because they would not consent to the false
doctrine of antichrist." <i>Chron., p. 526,</i> from Guil.
<i>Merul. Tijdtthresoor,</i> fol. <i>800. Hist. der Mart.
Adri., fol. 39. Chron. Zeg., fol. 299. Henr., Box. fol.
23.</i></p>

<h2>TWENTY-FOUR PERSONS BURNT ALIVE FOR THE BELIEF OF THE WALDENSES, AT PARIS, A. D. <i>1210</i></h2> 

<p>Christian Massaeus, having noticed the case of a great
company of martyrs who, having been found in the castle
Minerve, were all burnt alive as heretics, adds this
account, "At that time, namely, A. D. <i>1210,</i> also at
Paris, twenty-four who were of the same obstinacy (thus he,
after the manner of the papists, calls the steadfastness of
these people), were burnt alive." <i>Christ. Mass. Chron., lib.
17, A. D. 1210,</i> compared with the large <i>Christen
Martelarersboeck, edit. 1619, fol. 455,</i> Col. <i>4.</i></p>

<p>The writer, after the manner of the papists, calls these
people heretics, and their steadfast faith obstinacy; but how
can anything good proceed from the mouth of the wicked?
However, this must not offend us, since not only these, but
even the ancient holy prophets, apostles, and servants of God,
were stigmatized with many opprobrious names, yea, titles of
the devil, by evil worldly men.</p>

<h2>ABOUT ONE HUNDRED PERSONS CALLED WAL DENSES, BURNT FOR THE FAITH, AT STRAS BURG; THIRTY-NINE AT BINGEN; AND EIGHTEEN AT MENTZ, A. D. 1212</h2> 

<p>A. D. 1212, the true doctrine of the Gospel began to
manifest itself to a great extent in Alsace, among the
Waldenses, who were one people and of the same faith with the
Albigenses. But the prince of darkness, unable to endure this
great light, exerted every means to extinguish it, so that in
said year, in Strasburg alone, about a hundred persons,</p>

</div><div id="311"> 

<p>men as well as women, were burnt alive on the same day, for
this confession, by the servants of antichrist, particularly
through the bishop of that city.</p>

<p>Concerning this, the papistic writer H. Mutius writes, "A. D.
1212 a heresy arose in Alsace, by which noble and ignoble were
led astray. They maintained that it was lawful to eat flesh
every day throughout the whole year, and that there is as much
excess in the immoderate eating of fish, as of any kind of
flesh." Again, "That they do very wrong who forbid marriage;
since God has created all things, and everything may be used in
a holy manner, with thanksgiving."*, "This, their opinion," he writes,"they maintained very
firmly, and many believed them. Moreover, they did not hesitate
(hear how the papists speak) to revile the most holy lord, the
pope, because he prohibited ecclesiastical persons from
marrying, and bade them abstain on certain forbidden days from
some kinds of food. The pope of Rome therefore commanded that
these people should be made away with and put to death. Hence,
about a hundred were burnt together on the same day, by the
bishop of Strasburg. H. <i>Mut., Chron. lib. 19.</i></p>

<p>Bruschius, in his history of the Monasteries of Germany,
relates, that at the same time, thirty-five, or, as others
read, thirty-nine persons, inhabitants of Mentz, were brought
to Bingen, and there burnt alive for the doctrine of the
Waldenses; and at another time, by the same bishop of Mentz,
eighteen others for the same confession, Also A. <i>Melt., 2d
book, fol. 457, col. 3;</i> also P. <i>J. Twisck, Chron., Q.
526, col. 1,</i> from Guil. <i>Merulae Tijdt-thresoor, fol.
800.</i></p>

<h2>CRUEL MODE OF INQUISITION OVER THE DOCTRINE OF THE WALDENSES, OR OF THOSE CALLED HERETICS, A. D. <i>1214</i></h2> 

<p>In the year <i>1214,</i> Conrad of Marpurg, a Dominican
friar, was appointed by Pope Innocent III, grand inquisitor of
the faith over all Germany, and sent by him closely to search
out and examine such as were said to have strayed from the
faith of the Roman church. This commission he carried out with
such cruelty for full nineteen years, that an incredible number
of persons, declared heretics by him, were put to death, partly
by fire and partly with the sword.</p>

<p>Trithemius speaks of the manner of this inquisition,
saying, "That this inquisitor, Conrad of Marpurg, used to try
the heretics (the true Christians), by giving them a red-hot
iron into their hands, and to deliver all those that were burnt
by it as heretics, unto the secular judge, to be sentenced to
the fire." Hence it came that only very few escaped, but that
all who were once accused and</p>

<br /><cite>* What the Waldenses held with regard to infant
baptism, the mass, and transubstantiation, has been previously
shown. brought to him for examination were, without mercy,
condemned by him as heretics to be burned., "There were some," he writes,"who held that he condemned
very many innocent persons, because the red-hot iron, finding
none without sin, although they otherwise had never been
tainted with any heresy, burned almost everyone that took it."
<i>Trithem. Chron. Hirsaug., A. D., 1214 and 1215. Also A.
Melt., 2d book, fol. 459, col. 3; also</i> fol. <i>466, col.
4.</i></cite> 

<h2>THE PRECEDING INQUISITION CONTINUED</h2> 

<p>This was the most cruel and dreadful time which one could
live to see; for this entire infernal inquisition, which was
carried on with red-hot iron and other intolerable means, had
penetrated even into the Netherlands, so that there, not less
than in Germany, this tyranny was carried on in the same
manner, and even worse.</p>

<p>I cannot forbear here to inform you, though with a terrified
and shuddering heart, of what I have found with respect to this
matter, in a certain account which has just fallen into my
hands, as it were, for this occasion. Marcus Zueris van
Boxhorn, author of the <i>Nederlandtsch Historien,</i> in his
first book, p. <i>23,</i> printed A. D. 1649, at Leyden, and
dedicated to the H. M. Lords States, gives the following
account with reference to it:</p>

<p><i>The trial by red-hot</i> iron.-If a person charged with
holding sentiments contrary to the doctrine of the Roman
church, from fear of a cruel death, denied it, the accused was
delivered into the hands and custody of a priest, who was to
find out the truth. Before making the trial, then commonly
called <i>the ordeal, they</i> together spent three days
ostensibly in fasting and prayer. This done, they went together
to the church, where the priest, in his sacerdotal attire,
placed himself in front of the altar, upon which he laid a
piece of iron, first chanting the song of the three children in
the fiery furnace, "Praise the Lord, all His works," etc., and
then pronouncing a blessing over the altar, and the fire in
which the iron was to be laid. The iron, while heating on the
coals, was repeatedly sprinkled with holy water, and in the
meantime mass was read. When the priest took the wafer into his
hand, he adjured the accused, praying meanwhile (ostensibly) to
God that by His righteousness He would discover the truth of
the matter, using among others these words</p>

<p><i>The priest's prayer over the red-hot iron.-</i> "'Lord God
I we pray Thee that Thou wouldst clearly manifest the truth in
this Thy servant; Thou, O God, who hast in former times done
great and wonderful signs by fire, among Thy people; who didst
deliver Abraham, Thy son, from the fire of the Chaldeans by
which many perished; who didst preserve Lot, Thy servant, when
Sodom and Gomorrah were justly laid in the ashes by the fire;
who, in the sending of the Holy Ghost by the light of fiery and
flaming tongues, didst separate the be-</p>

</div><div id="312"> 

<p>lievers from the unbelievers; grant us the grace, while we
make this trial, that through this red-hot fire we may discover
the truth. If this, Thy servant, who is now being tried, is
guilty, let his hand be seared and burnt by the fire. But if,
on the contrary, he is innocent, let him not be hurt by the
fire. Lord God, to whom all secrets are known, however hid they
are, fulfill, by Thy goodness, the expectation of our
confidence and faith, while we make this examination; that the
innocent may be acquitted; but the guilty detected and
punished.', "When the priest had uttered this prayer," writes M. S.
<i>Boxhorn, p</i>. 24,"he again sprinkled the redhot iron with
holy water, and pronounced this blessing over it: 'The blessing
of God the Father, and God the Son, and God the Holy Spirit,
come down upon this iron, that by it we may be enabled to
pronounce a true judgment."'</p>

<p><i>How the iron was given into the hand of</i> <i>the
accused.-This having</i> been said, the flaming iron was given
into the hand of the accused, who had to carry it nine paces.
The hand was then closely wrapped up with cloth by the priest,
and sealed, for three days, at the end of which it was
inspected. If it was wounded, the accused was judged to be
guilty; if not, he was acquitted.</p>

<p>Oh, cruel inquisition I by which not only men, but even God
was tried and tempted to the utmost."Thou shalt not," says
Christ,"tempt the Lord thy God." Matt. 4:7.</p>

<p><i>Another examination, by</i> hot water.-Sometimes also a
kettle with hot, boiling water was used, into which the accused
had to thrust his hand up to the elbow, in order to ascertain
his guilt or innocence. This procedure was called
<i>Ketel-vang, in</i> the ancient Netherlands, and particularly
in the Friesian statutes and laws.</p>

<p><i>The trial by cold</i> water.-Likewise, and for the same
purpose, the cold and consecrated water of the canals or rivers
was used. The accused were cast into it, and from the sinking
or floating of their bodies, the righteousness or
unrighteousness of their case was judged. This mode was carried
out in the following manner at that time: A priest, one of the
judges, went with the accused, and a great train of others, to
a deep canal, ditch, or river, near-by; and standing on the
shore or brink, he adjured the water with these words, "I adjure
thee, O Water." However, first he gave the accused a cup of
holy water to drink, saying, "This holy water be for a test to
thee this day.'; Turning then to the water, he exclaimed, "I
adjure thee, O Water, in the name, etc., who created thee in
the beginning, and would have thee serve to meet the
necessities of man, and be separated from the waters above." He
then adjured the water again in the name of Christ, and then in
the name of the Holy Ghost, and finally in the name of the Holy
Trinity; and this, with such hard, stern and severe words that
I am shocked, and afraid in my very soul to repeat
them."Thereupon followed," writes M. S. Boxhorn,"several
additional solemn adjurations (these, however, he does not
relate), which, when the priest had finished, the accused was
stripped starknaked, and cast or driven into the water. If he
sank, he was considered innocent; but if he floated, he was
forthwith condemned and punished by fire, as being guilty."
<i>Page</i> 26.</p>

<p>If any one should desire to read a full account as regards
said papistic adjurations over the water, let him consult M. S.
<i>Boxhorn, Nederlandtsch Hist., 1st book, pp.</i> 25, 26.</p>

<h2>THE MANNER IN WHICH THESE TRIALS WERE COM MENCED IN THE NETHERLANDS, ABOUT THE YEAR 1215</h2> 

<p>Before bringing persons to the trial with red-hot iron, hot
or boiling water, or in cold rivers, which was called the
severest or extremest examination, milder means were employed,
especially in the Netherlands; however, with such intricacies,
and so many snares, that an honest soul, that would act
candidly, and without dissimulation, could not escape but was
in danger of losing his life.</p>

<p>The above-mentioned Boxhorn, describing the manner of
examination used at that time against the Vaudois, who also
belonged to the Poor Men of Lyons, and were at that time one
people with the Albigenses and Waldenses, but afterwards
differed with them in various articles, relates: That the
Dominicans, a certain order of monks, were at that time sent by
the pope here into the Netherlands, as inquisitors; who, in
order to well execute their office as it were, had put in
writing a certain mode of examination, which literally read as
follows</p>

<p>Examination.-"When any one in the Netherlands is brought
before the judge, suspected and accused of heresy, he shall
first be asked: Why are you apprehended? Does any one know of
your imprisonment? Have you not learned from any one the cause
of your apprehension? If he say</p>

<p>I do not know; answer him: They say that you, seduced by
certain teachers who keep themselves concealed, have, to a
considerable extent, departed from the Christian faith, as it
is publicly taught in this country and elsewhere, throughout
all Christendom. Let him answer as well or as much as he will,
and let forthwith an oath be demanded and put to him, unless
his youth does not admit of his swearing. Before he takes the
oath, these words shall be spoken to him: See, you are to swear
here, that you will tell in all sincerity the truth as it is
known to you, concerning yourself as well as others in regard
to whom you will be questioned. If he refuses to swear,* he
shall be suspected so much the more.</p>

<br /><cite>* From this it is quite evident that said people
had an aversion to the swearing of oaths. But some one may say:
This has refer. ence to adjuring their belief. To this it may
be replied, that the oath demanded here did not aim at anything
further than the tell. ing of the truth, as the preceding words
declare.</cite> 

</div><div id="313"> 

<p> "See well to it also, that he have no reason to say that he
was compelled by threats or otherwise to swear; but if he is
ready willingly to take the oath, present these words to
him</p>

<p><i>The oath administered by the inquisitors, near the
chapter-house of Utrecht, to those who at that time were called
heretics.--"I,</i> N. N. N., swear to God Almighty, my Lord of
Utrecht (or otherwise) and the lords present in his stead, that
I will tell the pure truth, without fear, of all matters known
to me, concerning which I shall be questioned here; not only in
regard to myself, but also to others. So help me God and His
holy mother, in my last hour." <i>Boxhorn, Nederl. Hut., Q.
15.</i></p>

<p>In this manner the inquisitors proceeded, and then observed
the following mode of examination, which it seems they had to
employ as their fundamental rule, against those who were called
heretics, "If he is not known to you (says this rule) question him
thus: What is your name? Where were you born? Who was your
father? Again: How often have you confessed to the teachers of
the heretics, who secretly circulate that they have come into
the world in place of the apostles, to go from place to place,
preaching the Gospel?*</p>

<p>Again, "How long have you resided here? How old were you when
you began to give audience to these heretics? When did you last
confess to them? For whom did you take them? Do they also wear
crowns [the tonsur] and the priestly garb? What penance did
they impose on you? Did they not charge you to say an <i>Ave
Maria?</i> Did you believe that it was in their power to
forgive your sins? Who first directed you to these heretics? To
how many heretics have you confessed? What was the name of the
first? the second? the third? etc., "Did your parents also hold this heretical belief? How often
have you received the body of Christ? Have you also confessed
to our priests? Have you also confessed to them, that you hold
this heretical belief? Why did you not confess it? How often
have you heard them teach? where first? in what houses, or
places? in what room or chamber? by day or at night? in the
morning or evening? Who were there besides you? What did your
teachers preach respecting purgatory? It there a purgatory? How
many times a day do you pray for the souls of your parents,
friends, and benefactors? What alms have you given for them?
How many days have you fasted for them? How many masses have
you had read for them?, "Can you say the <i>Ave Maria!</i> Say it. Can you say any
prayers to the saints? Do you believe, that the holy Mary, and
other saints, are acquainted with our distresses, and that they
are filled with compassion on this account, and pray for us?
Who is the patron of your parish? When is his day ,celebrated?
Have you properly celebrated him?</p>

<br /><cite>* It seems that these inquisitors thought that
these people also observed auricular confession; which is a
grave misapprehension, seeing their confession avowed the
contrary.</cite> 
<p> What kind of a saint is it? Is it an angel? or a
martyr? or a confessor? or an apostle? or a virgin? or a widow?
What did you bring as an offering on their feast day? Have you
chosen for yourself a certain apostle? Who is your apostle?, "What do you hold with regard to the worship of the holy
cross? the nails? the crown of thorns? the spear? and the
images of the saints?, "Have you ever journeyed to Rome, to obtain forgiveness of
your sins? Have you sprinkled yourself with holy water? Have
you tasted the consecrated salt? Have you consecrated twigs and
tapers in your house? Have you done this with a pure and
upright heart, as do other Christians, who by your people are
called <i>Strangersf</i> or have you done it merely for
appearance' sake, so as not to be detected in your heresy? Tell
the simple truth., "Do you not believe that St. Martin has become a saint, and
that his holy soul is now in the kingdom of heaven? Will you
drink in the name and to the remembrance of St. Martin? Do you
know any hymns to the honor of God, or His holy mother? and so
forth., "Say, finally: Will you desist with all your heart from your
errors, and separate yourself from the heretics, and henceforth
have no fellowship with them? If so, then swear thus:</p>

<p><i>The second oath administered by the inquisitors to those
who were at that time called heretics; which none of the true
martyrs ever swore.</i> "I, N. N. N., swear an oath, to God
Almighty, my lord, bishop N. N., and the lords present in his
stead, without any dissimulation, that henceforth I will go no
more to the people that call themselves, etc., and will have
fellowship neither with them nor with their leaders, teachers,
etc., as long as they remain heretics. Moreover, I forswear
(see what paptistic tricks these are), all manner of unbelief
that is contrary to the open faith taught and maintained
everywhere in the holy Roman church and in Christendom. And
that I will also submit to penance for my transgressions, when
and as it shall, though in mercy, be imposed upon me. So truly
help me God and His mother, in my last hour." <i>Boxhorn,
page</i> 18. Concerning the examination, see <i>page
15-17.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-Who does not see, beloved reader, that these were
snares from which the pious could not extricate themselves
without losing their lives? for it was certain that the Poor
Men of Lyons, in those times, whether called Vaudois,*
Waldenses, or Albigenses, did not swear at all; which,
especially as regards the Waldenses and Albigenses, has been
distinctly proved in our previous explanation. This, then, was
the first snare which they could not escape.</p>

<p>In the second place, by the form of that oath it was
proposed to them, that they should forsake their entire
religion, faith, and worship, and join</p>

<br /><cite>* That the very odious name"Vaudois", was given
the Poor Men of Lyons, need offend no one; since Christ Himself
and His holy apostles were often called evil and opprobrious
names, by their adversaries.</cite> 

</div><div id="314"> 

<p>themselves to the Roman church which they held to be worse
than Babylon. Hxow could this be done by them with a good
conscience? In no wise. This snare, therefore, they could
likewise not escape. What, then, had they to expect? Nothing
less than certain death; yea, a cruel, ignominious, and
accursed death, though blessed for those who, remaining
steadfast, suffered it.</p>

<p>I will say nothing now of the cruel and horrible manner of
inquisition, by red-hot iron, hot water, as also in open
rivers,* which generally followed upon the examination just
stated.</p>

<p>What heathen or barbarians have ever acted thus? It is true,
they put the pious witnesses of Jesus to death in a very
painful manner; however, that was the end of it; and, besides,
sometimes means remained by which it was possible to escape
death, and yet keep the faith. And we nowhere read, that they
ever had such a mode of inquisition over matters of faith; but
the Romanists, who call themselves Christians, were not afraid
or ashamed of it.</p>

<p>Certainly, here one or the other, either the body or the
soul, had to be sacrificed by the martyrs, for if they would
save the body, by forsaking the faith, which they, in their
conscience, recognized as the genuine, yea, the only and
eternal truth, they were in danger, yea, fully assured of
losing their souls; on the other hand, if they sought to
preserve their souls, by their good confession, and by
forsaking the superstitions of popery, they had to lose their
bodies, and this by the most cruel, horrible, and miserable
death; which, according to the custom of that time, was to be
placed alive into the flames until death ensued.</p>

<p>In this manner, very many, yea, almost a countless number,
of pious Christians, called Albigenses and Waldenses, perished
in those times; who, constrained by the love of Christ, to hold
fast the confession of their faith, willingly exchanged this
earthly for the heavenly; suffering here the tabernacle of
their body to be dissolved, in order to have a building with
God, a house not made with hands, eternal in the heavens. II
Cor. 5:1.</p>

<p>We will now see, what persons perished for the faith, in
that cruel inquisition, particularly under the test of red-hot
iron, not in the Netherlands, but in Germany, where it first
originated.</p>

<h2>ABOUT EIGHTY PERSONS CALLED WALDENSES, BURNT FOR THE FAITH, AT STRASBURG, A. D. 1215</h2> 

<p>Now, when the throne of antichrist began to suffer much
detriment through the doctrine of the Waldenses, and infant
baptism, the swearing of oaths, the secular power and dominion,
the authority of the Pope of Rome, the mass, purgatory,
absolution or forgiveness of sins by the so-called clergy,
pilgrimages, visitations of the holy sepulchres,</p>

<br /><cite>* For further information respecting the method
of the inquisitors, see our account of the martyrs for the year
1301</cite> 
<p>etc. prayers, or sacrifices for the dead, and other
things pertaining to popery, were opposed by them, they saying,
that these things ought to have no place in the true church of
Christ; it came to pass, A. D. 1215, that this cruel man,
Conrad of Marpurg, of whom it was stated, for the year 1214,
that he had been sent into Germany, as grand inquisitor, by
Pope Innocent III, apprehended over eighty persons, both men
and women, who were called Waldenses and made the same
confession. They were also examined, concerning their faith, in
that horrible manner of which we have already spoken, namely,
by taking a red-hot iron into their bare hands; and having all
of them endured it patiently, and remaining steadfast, they
were finally condemned to be burnt alive as heretics; which was
done to them all on the same day, at Strasburg, in said year of
their apprehension, A. D. 1215.</p>

<p>Of this the papistic writer Trithemius gives the following
account, "At this time, namely A. D. 1215, there were very many
who were heretics secretly, men as well as women, who spread
divers strange errors throughout all Germany, France, and
Italy; of whom great numbers were apprehended and burnt alive.
For in said year more than eighty were apprehended in
Strasburg, at the same time, among whom but very few were found
innocent; for if any of them deni ed the heresy,* Conrad of
Marpurg, the pope's inquisitor, would try them by giving them
red-hot iron into their hands, and deliver all those that were
burnt by it, to the secular judge, as heretics, to be sentenced
to the fire." <i>Trith. Chron. Hiysaug.</i> Also, A.
<i>Mell.,</i> 2d <i>book,</i> fol. 459. C. Mellinus calls these
martyrs Waldenses, fol. 457, col. 3; and their confession he
has shown, fol. 446, col. 1, 2.</p>

<h2>SEVERAL CHRISTIANS BURNT FOR THE FAITH, AT TOULOUSE, A. D. 1215</h2> 

<p>About that time, Pope Innocent III had advised Dominic, that
by means of constant preaching and disputation he should
wondrously execute the office of inquisition, which he had
entrusted to him, namely, against the so-called heretics; and
that he should reconcile to the Roman church those who should
ostensibly become converted; but should justly condemn such as
remained refractory, that is, steadfast in their faith.
<i>Sixtus 5, in Diplonn. instit. Festi S. Petri Mart.</i></p>

<p>Dominic discharged his inquisitorial office so energetically
in the city of Toulouse, against the heretics mentioned, that
is the Christians called Waldenses, that several who had been
cast into prison, were, by his advice, delivered to the secular
judge, to be burned. For, when in those times people could not
be overcome by way of argument, with the Word of God, they
began to dispute with fire</p>

<br /><cite>* It is necessary here to understand that by the
word"heresy" those people did not mean their orthodox faith;
but all that could truly be called heresy; and this they then
disavowed; whereby this inquisitor, (to all appearance) though
he was very crafty, was greatly misled.</cite> 

</div><div id="315"> 

<p>and sword against them; and then it was an easy matter to
conquer them, not in regard to:the truth, but in regard to
their bodies and lives. This was also the case with these pious
people of Toulouse, who would rather lose their lives than
forsake the truth; which they confirmed in the flames by their
death, having commended their souls into the hands of God, in
the year of our Lord 1215.</p>

<p>The papist Theodoric, in his biography, of Dom-, inic, makes
mention of these martyrs, saying, "When he (Dominic) was preaching, at this time, in the parts
of Toulouse, it happened that some. heretics were apprehended
in that city and were convicted by him; whom, when they would
not return to the Catholic church, he delivered to the secular
Judge. When they had been condemned to be burnt." <i>Theod. in
vita Dominici, citate Bzov. ad A. D.</i> 1215, <i>Art. 11,</i>
12. Also, <i>A. Mellinus,</i> 2d <i>book, fol. 460, col.
4.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-A. D. 1220 lived the strong and celebrated theologian
Almaricus; he reproved as idolatry the invocation of saints,
and denied transubstantiation; on which account he was burnt at
Paris. <i>P. J. Twisck, page</i> 537, col. 1, from <i>Hist.
Andr., page</i> 162.</p>

<p>A. D. 1218.-In a certain ancient history of the martyrs of
this time, I have found the following account, in which one of
the orthodox believers presents a summary of the doctrine of
the papists, as opposed to the true doctrine of the true church
of , God in those times; it reads as follows</p>

<p>1."They found their church upon the succession and
derivation of the bishops (though erroneously) from the times
of the apostles.</p>

<p>2."They call those bishops, who consecrate churches,
chapels, and altars; who make mass priests and sanctuaries of
the altars.</p>

<p>3."They regard the pope as the supreme bishop, the head of
their churches; who may be reproved by none but God.</p>

<p>4."They are divided into many contending sects; some are
ecclesiastics, some seculars. The ecclesiastics have separated
themselves from the common people-whom they call the laity-and
are th mselves variously divided. Some are called monk and
nuns; who vow, not to marry; to submit to voluntary poverty; to
observe human institutions, such as, to have nothing to do with
money; to wear a gray, white, or black cap; to eat no flesh; to
be dumb at times.; and other similar false and invented forms
of holiness. Others are called secular priests; who also may
not marry, but like the others, have to do a great amount of
muttering and reading.</p>

<p>5."They have priests, who are consecrated by the bishops, to
offer up sacrifice for the living and the dead.</p>

<p>6."All these ecclesiastics hold themselves exempt from
punishment by civil authority, and bear no burdens with the
citizens, since they are exempt. 7."They seek their salvation
out of Christ, in their own works and merits, which they also
sell to each other for money; such as masses, indulgences,
pilgrimages, and the merits of departed saints, which they also
sell to the dead, who, they say, are in purgatory.</p>

<p>8."They have an idol or patron for every city, village, or
hamlet.</p>

<p>9."They divide the power and honor of God among the departed
saints; thus, seamen invoke St. Nicholas, St. Christopher, and
St. Anna; women in travail, St. Mary; for gum-boils, St.
Appollonia; against pestilence, St. Rochus and St. Anthony.</p>

<p>10."They set up images in their churches; they light tapers,
torches, and lamps before them; they clothe them in cloth,
silk, velvet, silver, and gold; they carry them with great
reverence on their shoulders; they visit them in different
places, and offer gifts to them (to which practice the popes
and bishops append indulgence for sins); they kneel before
them; they kiss, and worship them.</p>

<p>11."In their oaths they swear by God and all His saints,
etc.</p>

<p>12."They pray to, and call upon God, without considering
their need, and without thinking why they call upon Him.; they
give Him their prayers by the number, as apples are bought;
they read, in the hours, rosaries, etc.</p>

<p>13."They create many sabbaths, which they call holidays, in
honor of departed saints; on which days manual labor is
forbidden on pain of punishment; while drinking to excess,
bartering, and gambling remain unpunished. On these days they
generally commit shameful idolatry; the services are. read in
an unknown tongue; water is conjured; the organ is played; and
the dead are called on for help and assistance.</p>

<p>14."To the two sacraments, or signs of grace, instituted by
Christ in His church, namely, holy baptism and the holy Supper,
which they have shamefully corrupted, they have added five
others, namely, confirmation, matrimony, ordination of mass
priests, auricular confession, and extreme unction.</p>

<p>15."In baptism they leave out the most important part,
namely the preaching of the Gospel; and add of their own,
conjured salt, grease, spittle, and tapers, and exorcise the
devil from the child which he never possessed.</p>

<p>16."They also baptize bells, giving them names.</p>

<p>17."They have changed the Lord's Supper into an offering for
the living and the dead; they conJure the bread with five
words,* and persuade the people, that the bread is changed into
flesh, and the wine into blood.</p>

<p>18."They withhold the wine from the laity, contrary to the
command of Christ, who said: <i>'Drink ye all of it.'</i>, "Floc est enim corpus meum", i. e. for this is my body.</p>

</div><div id="316"> 

<p>19."They worship the bread, and say that it is their God;
they enclose it in coffers and ciboria; they carry it through
the streets; they burn torches and tapers before it, also at
noonday; they address and salute it; but it answers not.</p>

<p>20."In their churches they have altars draped with linen,
upon which burning tapers are placed at daytime, when mass is
read.</p>

<p>21."Mass is read by a mass priest, who is hired to do it for
money, or a yearly salary; he comes clothed in strange attire,
after Jewish fashion, with a drinking cup of silver or:gold in
his hand, and accompanied by an attendant. He then says his
confession before the altar, in Latin (though the attendant
does not understand it), and invokes the assistance of the dead
saints. Then, having kept up his mummery for a considerable
time, having spoken loud and low, turning himself hither and
thither, kissing and licking, he finally takes bread and wine,
and forthwith offers the same to God, for the redemption of
souls, for the hope of salvation, and the health of those
present. Thus they reject Thy sacrifice, O Christ Jesus, which
Thou once didst make for our salvation. O God, says the writer,
how canst Thou suffer this? He then calls the dead saints to
the feasts, desiring to be aided by their merits. Over the
bread he breathes these five words: Hoc <i>ist enim corpus
meum,</i> that is</p>

<p>For this is my body; supposing that thereby the bread will
be changed into flesh. He then holds it above his head, for the
people to worship it. So he does also with the cup. Then he
prays for all those who sleep in Christ, that they may obtain a
place of refreshing. Thereupon he prays to the Father, to
accept His Son, whom they believe to have there, as graciously
as he accepted the offerings of Melchisedec and of Abel.
Finally, he worships the bread, calling it the Lamb of God.
Having worshiped the Lamb, he breaks it in pieces, and eats it
up, also quaffing the wine, which he imagines to be the Lamb's
blood. This is the glorious mass of the papists, which, says
our author, is a shameful corruption of the Supper of Christ,
and has been reprehended by many godly men, who on this account
had shed their blood.</p>

<p>22."Such masses they read in honor of dead saints, of the
sacrament, of the cross, the spear, and the nails.</p>

<p>23."They sell the same as a remedy against all sickness,
against storm, thunder, lightning, hail, tempests at sea, and
every calamity. Every man is served according to his money;
they who give little, have a dry mass, or a wet mass without
singing; those who give much, get a half-sung mass, or one
partly sung, according as to how much they give.</p>

<p>24."They teach, that their invented sacrament of
confirmation is of more importance than the sacrament of
baptism, instituted by Christ; and that baptism is incomplete
without confirmation.</p>

<p>25."They dissolve marriage, in order that the husband or the
wife may become spiritual, that is, a priest, monk, or nun,
contrary to the command of Christ: What God hath joined
together, let no man put asunder.", "Time would fail me," writes this zealous man,"if I were to
recount all the falsities of the papists, in life, doctrine;
and sacraments; and still they can endure no admonition to
reform, but persecute with fire and sword, those who admonish
and reprove them." Ex <i>Author. Tempor., A.</i> D. 1218,
compared with the History of the Martyrs, by J. S.,
<i>edition</i> 1645, <i>fol.</i> 32, col. 1-3. <i>Gerard de la
Motte, deacon of the Christians called Albi-Waldenses, with
some of his fellow-believers, burnt for the faith, at Borriens,
A.</i> D. 1227.</p>

<p>When the believing defenseless. Albi-Waldenses* had enjoyed
rest for a season, and the lily of their true faith was
beginning, in some measure, to grow and blossom, in all purity
and beauty (as compared with former times), the thorns of
persecution immediately arose over it; inasmuch as these pious
and upright people were forthwith deprived of their liberty. by
the Romanists; so that as soon as it was noticed, that they
increased, here or there, though secretly, under the protection
of their authorities, means were sought without delay, to
subdue, yea, utterly to exterminate, them.</p>

<p>This appeared A. D. 1227, when, upon the mere report that a
few of these people resided in the town of Borriens, the whole
place (in order to apprehend them), was besieged and enclosed
by Humbert of Beaujeu, who, having made himself master of the
place, and having entered it, apprehended said people, and, as
they would not desist from their faith, caused them to be burnt
alive; all of whom testified to the truth and uprightness of
their faith, as gold in the furnace, by their steadfast death
in the midst of the flames.</p>

<p>Certain papistic writers say, that there were some in
Borriens, who were said to be heretics, and who, as they would
not desist from their belief, were burnt alive; among whom
there is mentioned one Gerard de la Motte, who, it is said, was
their deacon or minister. This is stated to have occurred <i>A.
D. 1227,</i> in the time of Humbert of Beaujeu, whom the king
had left in Languedoc. <i>hignier, Hist. Eccles.,</i> from
<i>Vincentius</i> and others already cited, and <i>Chron. Moat
f ortensi Hist. Adde Gaguin., lib. 7,</i> and Paul. <i>Aemil.,
lib. 7, de Cest. Franc. in Lud. 8. Also, Abr. Mell., 2d book,
page 464, col. 3.</i></p>

<h2>OF VARIOUS PAPAL STATUTES AND ORDINANCES INSTITUTED AGAINST THE WALDENSES, OR SO-CALLED HERETICS, ABOUT A. D. <i>1229</i></h2> 

<p>Franciscus Pegna, a Romanist, in a tract written by him to
John Calderinus, touching the manner of proceeding against the
heretics, declares to have</p>

<br /><cite>* Albigenses says one writer.</cite> 

</div><div id="317"> 

<p>found in past years, in the Vatican Library, as well as in
an old parchment manuscript book, which had been brought from
the inquisition from Florence to Rome, information respecting
various councils held in those times against the Waldenses, in
France. Among others, of one held in the year 1229 in Toulouse,
a place where the Anabaptists, called Waldenses, greatly
increased. The statutes and ordinances enacted there were
published by Cardinal Romanus, Legate of the Pope. <i>Franc.
Pegna. T. 11. Doctor., part</i> 2, fol<i>. 410, edition
Tenet.,</i> 1584.</p>

<p>Among other things adduced by the aforementioned Franciscus
Pegna, in said tract, from the second council of the prelates
of France, there is also found the ecclesiastical ordinance
concerning the general abjuration of heresy, which reads as
follows</p>

<p><i>Of the abjuration of heresy.-"In order</i> that, through
the help of God, the heretics may be more easily exterminated,
and the Roman Catholic faith the sooner planted in the land, we
decree, that you shall perfectly observe all the statutes,
ecclesiastical ordinances, laws, and commandments that have
been enacted regarding this matter, by the apostolical see (the
pope and his legates), and by the princes. Moreover, that you
make all males as well as females, the male sex from fourteen
years and upwards, the female sex from twelve years and
upwards, abjure ail heresy, and, besides, promise with an oath,
that they will observe the Roman Catholic faith, defend the
Catholic church, and persecute the heretics. All those who,
after such abjuration, shall be found to have apostatized, and
not to have observed or fulfilled the penance imposed upon
them, shall be punished with the proper punishment, such
apostates deserve."</p>

<p>Of <i>the demolition of the houses of the
Wald.en</i>ses.-The fifth chapter of the council of Toulouse
contains the following brief ecclesiastical ordinance
respecting the demolition of the houses of the heretics,
namely, of the Waldenses and Albigenses, "We ordain, that the house in which a heretic is discovered,
shall be razed to the ground; and the land or farm upon which a
heretic is found, shall be confiscated."</p>

<p><i>0 f the forfeiture of all their</i> goods.-In the 35th
chapter of the council of Beziers we read, "Also the houses in
which any heretic shall be found, living or dead, accused or
condemned, being there with the knowledge or consent of the
proprietors of said houses, provided said proprietors have
attained their legal age, you shall cause to be demolished, and
shall confiscate all the goods of those who live in them,
unless they can legally prove or show their innocence or
ignorance." This much of the year 1229, in the second book of
the <i>History of the Persecutions, page</i> 465, col. 3.</p>

 
<h1>SEVERE PERSECUTIONS BY THE INQUISITION IN GERMANY, VERY MANY WHO WERE CALLED WALDENSES, BURNT FOR THE FAITH, A. D. 1230</h1>

<p>In the year 1230, in many provinces of Germany, especially
in the archbishopric of Treves, very many schools and secret
congregations of those who professed the doctrine of the
Waldenses, were discovered by Conrad of Marpurg, Inquisitor
General over Germany. They were said to be heretics, because
they denied transubstantiation in the mass, and purgatory,
saying that the prayers and intercessions of the living for the
dead served to no purpose, and could avail the deceased
nothing.</p>

<p>As regards their rejecting infant baptism, the swearing of
oaths, revenge or wars, together with all the traditions of the
Roman church, and their desiring to hold only to the truth of
the Holy Scriptures, especially of the New Testament, this has
already been shown., "From their processes, and from the confessions made by them
on the rack," says A. Mellinus,"it was seen that the number of
their adherents and accomplices, throughout Germany, France and
Italy, but especially in Lombardy, was very great."</p>

<p>About this time a severe inquisition was raised against
them, throughout Germany and Italy, by which very many were
discovered and burnt alive.</p>

<p>Abr. Mellinus <i>(contra Trithemius)</i> refutes the
calumnies cast against them, saying, "This is a</p>

<p>willful falsehood and slander, fabricated by this monk
(Trithemius), because they accused the pope. A. <i>Mell.,</i>
2d <i>book, fol.</i> 465, D: Also P. J. <i>Twrissck,;Chron.,
p.</i> 546, col. 2.</p>

<p>In the meantime we will produce some decrees by which, it
seems, the aforesaid inquisitor was made the more bold and
daring in putting into execution his unprecedented cruel
inquisition and tyranny against the innocent Christian
believers, who had separated from the Roman church.</p>

<h2>OF THE FIRST DECREE OF EMPEROR FREDERIC II, AGAINST THE DEFENCELESS ALBIGENSES AND WALDENSES, ABOUT A. D. 1230</h2> 

<p>Mellinus relates, from Abraham Bzovius, who completed the
<i>Annals of Baronius,</i> that Emperor Frederic II, at the
request of Pope Gregory IX, issued his decrees against the
Albigenses; however, under different names given them by the
Emperor, saying: <i>"(Petr. de Veneis lib. 1, epist.</i> 27.)
Here commence the chapters or articles of the constitution of
the Emperor against the Pata.rini (Waldenses). He then adds
some other names which do not properly belong here., "Men, as well as women, whatever name they may bear, we
sentence to perpetual infamy, that neither oath nor faith shall
be kept towards them; but we banish them, and order that their
goods be confiscated, never more to be returned to them., "We likewise ordain by this decree that all officers,
burgomasters, and rulers, in whatever office they may be,
shall, for the defense of the faith,</p>

</div><div id="318"> 

<p>publicly swear an oath that they will, in good faith and to
the best of their ability, endeavor to ex pet from the
districts under their jurisdiction, al heretics indicated to
them by the church., "But if any temporal lord, having been requester and
admonished thereto by the church, shall bt found negligent in
purging his land from heretics wickedness, let him be warned
that, one year after the admonition, we shall give his land for
a prey to all Catholics, who, after they shall have driver. out
the heretics, shall possess the same without molestation, and
preserve it in the purity of the (Catholic) faith., "We also banish those who believe (the Waldenses and
Albigenses), or receive them into their cities or houses,
protect or favor them, ordaining</p>

<p>That if any one having been noted as being in communion with
these believers, does not satisfy the church within a year, he
shall be considered infamous from that time on., "We add here that one heretic may convict another, and that
the houses of . . . , or of their harborers, protectors, and
favorers, or where they have taught or imposed hands upon
other, shall be demolished, never to be rebuilt Given."</p>

<h2>OF THE SECOND DECREE</h2> 

<p>By the chancellor of this Emperor, A. D., 1230. (Same place,
<i>Epist.</i> 25, <i>Petri..de Veneis).</i></p>

<p>In another letter of Peter de Veneis, we find another decree
of Frederic II, which reads as follows, "We therefore decree and ordain that heretics, of whatever
name, shall receive condign punishment, throughout the empire,
wherever the church shall condemn them as heretics, and deliver
or indicate them to the secular judge., "But if any of the aforesaid, after their apprehension,
deterred by the fear of death, shall desire to return to the
unity of the Catholic faith, they shall according to the
requirement of the church ordinances, be imprisoned for life,
to do penance., "Moreover, all heretics, in whatever city, village or place,
of the realm they may be found by the inquisition sent by the
Apostolic see, or by other zealous adherents of the Catholic
faith, shall receive like punishment., "All those, then, who shall have jurisdiction there, shall
be bound, on the denunciation or intimation of the inquisitors,
or of other Catholics, to apprehend and closely keep them,
until they, after their being condemned by the censure of the
church, shall punish them with death., "We ordain like punishment for those whom the crafty enemy
stirs up to be their advocates, or who are their improper
protectors."</p>

<p>At the end of the decree are these words, "But the heretics
whom they shall point out to you, you shall, each in his
jurisdiction, be bound to apprehend and keep in close custody,
so that they, after the judgement of the church, shall be
punished according to their deserts; knowing, that in the
execution of this matter, if you will do your utmost unitedly
with these brethren (the Dominicans and Franciscans)* to
expunge from our dominion the blot of this unheard-of heretical
wickedness (thus he calls the true faith), you will render unto
God a pleasing, and unto us a commendable, service., "But if any be slack or negligent herein, and unprofitable
before the Lord, he also shall be justly worthy of punishment
in our eyes." Given at Pavia.</p>

<h2>OF THE THIRD DECREE OF EMPEROR FREDERIC II AGAINST THE AFORE-MENTIONED PER SONS, A. D., 1230</h2> 

<p>Peter de Veneis <i>(Lib. 1, EQist.</i> 26), relates in his
letters a third decree of Emperor Frederic II, in which he
gives fuller information concerning the surname of the
Waldenses , namely, Patarim, as well as regarding their belief,
and their spreading into all the provinces of the empire; it
reads as follows:, "The sects of these heretics (says the Emperor), are not
called by the name of any ancient heretics, lest they should
become known; or, what is perhaps still more shameful, they are
not content with the ancient names, that is, to borrow their
names, like the Arians from Arius, the Nestorians from
Nestorius, or from other like heretics; but after the example
of the ancient martyrs, who suffered martyrdom for the Catholic
faith, they likewise, from their suffering, call themselves
Patarini, that is, <i>delivered unto passion or
suffering.</i>, "But these miserable Patarini, who are estranged from the
holy faith of the eternal Godhead (thus he speaks of the true
believers), destroy with one sweep of their heretical
wickedness, three things at once, namely, God, their neighbor
and themselves. They destroy God because they do not know the
faith and the counsel of God; they deceive their neighbor
because, under the cover of spiritual food, they administer the
pleasure of heretical wickedness; but far more cruelly they
rage against themselves, because, after destroying their souls
they, as extravagant squanderers of their life, and improvident
seekers of their death, ultimately also expose their bodies to
a cruel death, which they might have escaped by a true
confession of, and constancy in, the orthodox faith (thus he,
calls the priest's faith).</p>

<p>And what is hardest of all to say, those who survive are not
only not deterred by the example of others whom they see die
before their eyes, but they even strive to be burnt alive in
the sight of men," as he afterwards speaks of it in this same
decree., "Therefore we cannot refrain," says the Emperor,"from
drawing the sword of just vengeance</p>

<br /><cite>The Dominicans and Franciscans, though they
seemed to be very simple and modest, were neverteless the
principal actors in this matter.</cite> 

</div><div id="319"> 

<p>against them, the more vigorously to persecute them, as it
is judged and known that they practice the more extensively the
knavery of their superstition (thus he calls the virtue of
these people), to the clear exclusion of the Christian faith,
on account of the Roman church, which is held to be the head of
all other churches, as it is known that they came from the
borders of Italy, and especially from Lombardy, where, as we
have ascertained, their wickedness overflows far and wide, and
that from thence they have directed the rivulets of their
unbelief even into our kingdom of Sicily., "It is furthermore the will of the Emperor, that the crime
of heresy, and all kinds of accursed sects, of whatever name,
shall be reckoned among the public crimes, or those deserving
of death; yea, that the heresy of the Patarini (also called
Waldenses), shall be considered, before all the world, as more
abominable than the crime of <i>lese-majesty,</i> that is, than
the crime of him that has offended the Imperial Majesty., "The Emperor also wishes that, as the Patarini (or
Waldenses) walk in darkness, in order to conceal themselves
from the heat of persecution, endeavors shall be made to
discover them, and to earnestly seek them out, even though no
one accuses them, and that the officers of the Emperor, when
they have found them, shall keep them in bonds, in order that
at the proper time they may be called before the inquisition,
or brought to the rack., "And if they are accused only upon slight suspicion, we
command that they shall be examined by ecclesiastical persons
and prelates; and though they may err from but one article of
the (Roman) Christian faith, and, after admonition, continue
obstinately in their error, we ordain by this, our present
decree, that the Patarini (or Waldenses) shall be condemned to
death, and burnt alive; and let no one dare intercede for them,
for against him that shall do this, we will justly direct our
anger. Given, etc." Second book of the <i>Hist. of the
Persecutions, p. 466, a. b. c. from Abr. Bzovius, and A.
Bzorvius,</i> from <i>Petr. Tine., lib. 1, epist. 26.</i></p>

<h2>GREAT PERECUTION IN GERMANY OF THE ANABAP TIST WALDENSES, MANY OF WHOM WERE BURNT FOR THE FAITH, A. D. 1231</h2> 

<p>The above-mentioned decrees against the Christians called
Waldenses, issued by Emperor Frederic II, were not long without
their influence and effect; inasmuch as in the year following,
A. D. 1231, a severe persecution arose in Germany over the
innocent lambs of Christ, who, keeping themselves concealed in
quietness, were informed against and made manifest, through the
rack and otherwise. The consequence was, that many of them,
continuing steadfastly and immovably in their belief, were
burnt to death, and thus, having commended their souls unto
God, offered up an acceptable sacrifice well -pleasing unto
God. he following may serve as a confirmation of this
account</p>

<p>Abraham Bzovius relates, from a fragmentary history by an
unknown author, that in the year 1231 a great persecution arose
in Germany against the so-called heretics, who kept themselves
concealed in great numbers among the papists, in cities,
castles and villages, and brought over to their belief all whom
they could turn from their faith; many of whom were apprehended
and convicted in the presence of the clergy and the people and
that they held the belief of the Waldenses.</p>

<p>He writes further that"Brother Conrad of Marpurg, a monk of
the Dominican order, punished those who were convicted of
heresy, according to the manner prescribed by the
ecclesiastical ordinances, namely, with fire." <i>Abr. Bzov.,
T. 13, Annad. Baron., A. D.</i> 1232, <i>Art. 7.</i> Also in
the second book of the <i>History of the Persecutions, fol,
466,</i> dol. 3, 4., "The Waldenses," writes P. J. Twisck,"suffered severe
pesecution at this time, from the papists, and though they
sought to conceal themselves in wildernesses, mountains and
deep valleys, yet, their schools were discovered, their
assemblies broken up, and all cruelly killed, especially in the
bishopric of Treves, which state of things lasted three years."
<i>Chron., Q. 546, col.</i> 2.</p>

<p>NOTE.-From this account of P. J. Twisck, it appears that the
above persecution commenced already in the year 1230, just when
the decrees of Emperor Frederic II had been issued, and that it
continued for three years, namely, to the close of the year
1233; during which time doubtless very many believers perished,
of whom we shall notice a few with whom we have met.</p>

<h2>NINETEEN PERSONS CALLED WALDENSES, BURNT FOR THE FAITH, IN THE BISHOPRIC OF TOULOUSE, A. D. 1232</h2> 

<p>In the year 1232 the bishop of Toulouse apprehended, in his
dominion or bishopric, nineteen persons, who were said to be
heretics, because they adhered to the belief of the Waldenses,
whose confession we have already shown not to be at variance
with ours; all of which persons the bishop of Toulouse caused
to be executed, that is, burnt alive. <i>Vignier, A. D.</i>
1232. <i>Hist. Eccles. Also</i> in the second book of the
<i>History of the Persecutions, fol</i>. 466, col. 4.</p>

<h2>TWO HUNDRED AND TWENTY-FOUR PERSONS, CALLED WALDENSES, BURNT FOR THE FAITH, IN A PLACE NEAR TOULOUSE, A. D. 1243</h2> 

<p>When the north wind* of persecution, which, from the year
1233 on, had done but little harm in the garden of the true
Christians, began to raise again, A. D. 1243, there were
apprehended, near</p>

<br /><cite>* Awake, O north wind; and come, thou south;
blow upon my garden, that the spices thereof may flow
out.-Solom. S. 4:16.</cite> 

</div><div id="320"> 

<p>Toulouse, two hundred and twenty-four persons, called
Waldenses, who are to be distinguished, and were also then
distinguished from others, who carried arms and called
themselves Albigenses, but had no communion with the true
Albigenses and Waldenses, both of whom were opposed to all
revenge, professed the same confession respecting suffering and
bearing for the name of Christ.</p>

<p>These two hundred and twenty-four defenceless and innocent
lambs of Christ, having been apprehended, and refusing to
forsake the Great Shepherd of the sheep, Jesus Christ, and His
holy commandments, as also the faith in His name, were all
condemned to death, and burnt alive, thus offering up a living
holy sacrifice, acceptable unto God, A. D. 1243.*</p>

<p>Concerning these persons, as well as their imprisonment and
death, see <i>hignier Hist., Eccl. A. D.</i> 1243; also, second
book ofthe <i>History of the Persecutions, fol</i>. 469, col.
3, also in an old manuscript chronicle, same date.</p>

<p>NOTE.-Besides the above authors, P. J. Twisck, also, it
seems, makes mention of these two hundred and twenty-four
persons; from the account of Henry Boxhorn, though he differs
somewhat in regard to the time when this happened, as well as
to the number of persons put to death; for, instead of A. D.
1243, he has it A. D. 1242, and instead of two hundred and
twenty-four, he has <i>about two hundred.</i></p>

<p>However, this difference is easily reconciled, if, first, in
regard to the time; A. D. 1242, is understood to mean the end
or close of said year, and A. D. 1243, the beginning; the
number of persons put to death, <i>about two hundred,</i> to
mean over two hundred, or two hundred and twenty-four, as
expressed.</p>

<p>The words of his account.are as follows, "A. D. 1242, the
Waldenses had to suffer much from popery, on account of their
~faith and religion. At this time, about two hundred persons,
together with two of their preachers, were apprehended in the
bishopric of Toulouse, by the bishop of Narbonne and Albi, and
the Seneschal of Carcassonne, and were all burnt alive,
continuing steadfastly in their religion." In the <i>13th
book</i> of his <i>Chronicle, p.</i> 557, col. 1, from <i>Henr.
Boxhorn, fol.</i> 25'.</p>

<h2>SEVERE INQUISITION OF BELIEVERS IN THE COUNTRY AROUND TOULOUSE, A. D. 1251</h2> 

<p>At this time there was as yet no abatement of the constraint
of conscience exercised over the faith of the orthodox
Christians, who had fled from Babylon, and, for the sake of the
welfare of their souls, could no longer trust themselves in
Romish Egypt. This appeared from.the new inquisition, which, by
order of the pope, through appointed in-</p>

<br /><cite>* This great number of martyred Waldenses,
through the carelessness of some writers, has been mingled
under the mire of certain erring persons, from whence we have
drawn them forth again, though not without labor. An ancient
writer says, "I seek pearls in the mire."</cite> 

<p>quisitors, suffered
the minds of the true believer; to have no rest, until they
left the Roman terri tories, or made an oral disavowal, or,
remaining steadfast, exchanged their life for a violent
death</p> 

<p>Regarding the most wicked and unjust inquisition, I have
found the following account:, "In the year 1251, the pope appointed, or sent, inquisitors
to Toulouse, from the orders of the Dominicans and Franciscans,
who exercised an inhuman tyranny over the Christians there. The
same thing was done at Worms, by Conrad Dorfc and his disciple
John, also Dominicans and inquisitors; who, condemning there
many innocent men to the fire, were therefore themselves,
ultimately, as by the hand of God brought to a very lamentable,
though just death." <i>Bal. Cent.</i> 4, in <i>Append., ad
Richard. Wich., p. 301,</i> compared with <i>A. Mell., fol</i>.
470, col. 1.</p>

<h2>CONTINUATION OF THE PRECEDING INQUISITION IN THE YEAR 1252</h2> 

<p>That the aforesaid inquisition or examination of the faith
did not end with the close of the previous year, but continued
also in the succeeding time, is so manifest that proof is
almost unnecessary; still, it experienced a brief cessation,
caused through the sudden and unexpected death of Peter of
Verona, who administered at that time the office of
inquisitor.</p>

<p>Concerning this, the above-mentioned author relates the
following, "In the year 1252, Peter of Verona, inquisitor in
Lombardy, justly perished near the city of Milan, on account of
his tyranny against the Waldenses, and, twenty-four days after,
was canonized, that is, placed on the register of the saints of
the Roman church, by the antichrist, the Pope of Rome, Innocent
IV."</p>

<p>NOTE.-In the following year, namely, A. D. 1253, Robert,
bishop of Lincoln, was deposed from his bishopric, by said Pope
Innocent IV, because he frequently in his preaching, though
with discretion, had openly reproved the avarice, ambition,
arrogance, and tyranny of the pope, yea, had expressly written
him severe letters, in which he accused him of exhausting
almost all England, by unusual taxes, in order to enrich his
illegitimate children, nieces and nephews. When the pope cited
him to Rome, he appealed from the papal tyranny to the judgment
and tribunal of Jesus Christ, whereupon the pope soon died.
<i>Bal. Cent. 4, cap. 18, in Roberta Grossoreste ex Annalis.
John. Buriens. Ranulpho, Mattheo and Fabiano,</i> compared with
<i>A. Mell., Hist., p. 470, col. 1.</i></p>

<p>In the year 1258, the Jacobines and Dominicans, in the
bishopric of Cambray, caused a great number of Christians, whom
they had condemned as heretics to be burned alive. <i>Balms
Cent. 4, cap.</i> 26, <i>ad Matt. Paris. Append., p.</i> 315,
<i>ex Th. Cantiprmt., lib.</i> 2, <i>cap.</i> 56. Also, A.
<i>Mell., Hist., lib.</i> 2, <i>p. 470, col. 2.</i></p>

</div><div id="321"> 

<p>In the year 1260, Pope Alexander IV wrote letters to the
inquisitors from the order of the Dominicans, in Lombardy and
the margravate of Genoa, to persecute the heretics (as they
were called) there. Moreover, he decreed that the inquisitors
might compel, by excommunication, the secular authorities,
whoever they might be, to execute, without delay, the sentence
of the inquisitors against those suspected of heresy. Compare
the last-mentioned author, in the place cited, with <i>Bzov.,
A. D.</i> 1260, <i>Art.</i> 4, ex <i>Decret. Epist Alex</i>and.
4.</p>

<h2>OF THE MANDATE OF POPE URBAN IV AGAINST THE WALDENSES AND ALBIGENSES IN LOM BARDY AND AROUND GENOA, A. D. 1262</h2> 

<p>The aforesaid distress among the believers, continued on,
through the severe inquisition commenced eleven years before,
namely, A. D. 1251; for, although the first inquisitors had
departed this life, as by the vengeance of God, it did not
remain so, since Pope Urban IV took up the pen to issue bloody
edicts against the orthodox Waldenses and Albigenses who were
scattered abroad in all parts. These decrees he caused to be
proclaimed to his minions, who bore the name of ecclesiastics.
This is stated in the following words by an ancient papist: In
the year 1262, Pope Urban IV made an ordinance against the
heretics in Lombardy and in the margravate of Genoa, and sent a
copy of it to the order of the Dominicans in said parts, to
persecute the Waldenses and Albigenses, who were mostly
scattered there. <i>Bzov., A. D.</i> 1262, <i>Art. 3, ex Decr.
Epist, Alex.</i> 4. also, A. M., <i>Hist., fol.</i> 470, col.
2.</p>

<p>Thereupon, as it appears, no small persecution arose; but as
to the mariner in which the same occurred, and the persons who
then suffered for the faith, we have not been able to find any
account, notwithstanding we have made diligent search. No
doubt, it fell chiefly upon the heads of the Waldenses and
Albigenses, since they were mentioned by name in the mandate of
the pope.</p>

<p>We deem what we have here shown sufficient for this time;
hence we will leave it, without adding any more.</p>

<p>NOTE.-A. D. 1270, eight years afterwards, Peter Caderita and
William Colonicus, Dominicans, persecuted the (so-called)
heretics in the kingdom of Aragon, <i>Bzov., A. D.</i> 1270,
<i>ex Surita,</i> lib. 2. A. <i>Mell., Hist., fol.</i> 470,
col. 2.</p>

<p>In the year 1280, the moon was completely changed into the
color of blood; which by many was held to signify the very
bloody and lamentable state of the church of God; the more so
since at that time, not only a dire persecution prevailed, but
also, a destructive crusade, under the sign of the cross, such
as was formerly waged against the Saracens, was undertaken the
following year, namely, 1281, by the papists, by order of the
pope, against the Albigenses in Spain. Compare the large book
of <i>Christian martyrs, fol.</i> 470, col. 2, <i>3,</i> with
<i>Bal. Cent.</i> 4, <i>Append. ad Greg. de Brid. Lington.,</i>
p. 446, from <i>Everildenas.</i></p>

<h2>SEVERE PERSECUTION OF THE ANABAPTIST WAL DENSES IN FRANCE, ABOUT A. D. 1280</h2> 

<p>P. J. Twisck, having noticed, in the first part of his
<i>Chronijck,</i> for the year 1280, the doctrine of the
Waldenses, whom he calls Waldois, after their leader, Peter
Waldus, finally he speaks of their persecutions,
saying, "Matthias Illyricus, in his <i>Register</i> of the
witnesses of the truth, says, that he has in his possession the
consultations of certain advocates of Avignon, also, of the
three bishops of Narbonne, Arles, and Aix, and of the bishop of
Alban, tending to the extermination of the Waldois, or
Waldenses, and written three hundred years previously; from
which it is evident, that at that time and before, a great
number of the believers were scattered here and there
throughout France., "We can also infer from the consultations of the aforesaid
archbishops, that even as their number was great, so was also
the persecution against them very cruel; for at the end of this
consultation it is written: 'Who is so great a stranger in
France, as to be ignorant of the damnatory sentence (thus speak
these papists .themselves) which has now, for a long time, been
most justly used against these heretical Waldois (Waldenses);
and should we doubt a matter so notorious and common, which has
cost the iCatholics so much money, sweat, and labor, and has
been sealed with so many condemnations and executions of
unbelievers (thus he calls the true believers)?', "Hence appears," writes Twisck,"what massacres of believers
occurred at this time, and what cruelties the subjects of
antichrist employed against them. 'And it can be proved,' says
Boxhorn, 'even from the testimony of their greatest enemies,
that they declared, maintained, and testified in the midst of
the fire, that they had received this their faith unaltered,
from hand to hand, from the times of the apostles; and they
continued even to the present time, having never been entirely
exterminated.'" <i>P. 1. Twisck, Chron., p. 606, col. 1,
2.</i></p>

<h2>CONTINUATION OF THE PRECEDING PERSECUTION, A. D. 1283</h2> 

<p>Mellinus writes that"A. D. 1283, the Waldenses had again
greatly increased in France, as also in other countries
throughout Christendom, notwithstanding they had been very
cruelly sought out and persecuted up to this time." In the
second book of the <i>History of the Persecutions, fol</i>.
470, col. 3, from <i>hign-cer, Hist. Eccl., A. D.</i> 1283.</p>

</div><div id="322"> 

<h2>FURTHER SPREADING OF THE AFORESAID PERSE CUTION, IN WHICH THE WALDENSES WERE BURNT IN GREAT NUMBERS, A. D. 1284</h2> 

<p>P. J. Twisck gives the following account for the year
1284, "The Waldois or Waldenses, of whom, since the year 1159,
much mention is made, increased at this time more and more, in
France and other countries of Christendom, notwithstanding that
they were craftily sought and cruelly persecuted, and that all
diligence and every means had first been employed, utterly to
exterminate them; which greatly astonished certain bishops and
advocates of Avignon of that time.""They were burnt," he
writes,"in great numbers." <i>Chron., fol.</i> 611, 612, from
<i>Henr. Boxhorn, fol.</i> 26.</p>

<h2>GERARD SAGARELLUS, BURNT IN THE CITY OF PARMA, FOR THE FAITH OF THE WALDEN SIAN ANABAPTISTS, A. D. 1285</h2> 

<p>In the year 1285, there became known, and were proclaimed
heretics by the adherents of popery, Gerard Sagarellus of
Parma, and Dulcinus of Novaria. Both of them were particularly
accused, on account of various articles opposed to the Roman
church and her superstitions, with which they were charged, of
having fallen into heresy, and having borrowed their belief
from the Waldenses, which, writes Abr. Mellinus, is quite
presumable.</p>

<p>As to the articles which they confessed contrary to the
belief of the Roman church, and on account of which they were
called heretics, they are written in the second book of the
<i>Hist. of the Persecutions, fol.</i> 470, col. 3.</p>

<p>Finally, as Gerard Sagarellus would not depart from, but
continue steadfast in, the truth of his Saviour, Jesus Christ,
he was (in the same year, it is supposed) burnt alive in the
city of Parma, by the bloodthirsty inquisitors. <i>A.
Mell.,</i> p. 470, col. 3. Also, <i>Bal. Cent.</i> 4,
<i>cap.</i> 30, <i>in Append. ad Laurent. Angl.</i></p>

<p>Dulcinus, who, besides the charge of his true faith, was
also assailed with great calumnies, was put to death in great
steadfastness some years afterwards. However, of this a fuller
account will be given for the year 1308.</p>

<p>NOTE.-Since the death of Dulcinus did not occur the year in
which Sagarellus died, but long afterwards, we will reserve the
account of the same for the proper time and place. Bear this in
mind.</p>

<h2>HERMAN, ANDREW AND GUILLEMETTE* EXHUMED AND BURNT, A. D. 1299</h2> 

<p>A. D. 1299, the <i>Fratricelli,</i> that is, the
AlbiWaldenses, who were called <i>Little Brothers,</i> were
declared heretics, by Pope Boniface VIII, because their belief
was contrary to the Roman church, as we have already shown.
Said pope caused these Fratricelli (or Albigenses) to be
persecuted with</p>

<br /><cite>* Wilhelmina. so much violence that he not only
spared not the living, but not even the dead; for he caused one
Herman, who had been one of their principal teachers, to be
exhumed twenty years after his death, and his bones burnt to
ashes, notwithstanding the papists, who were his enemies, had,
in his life time, regarded him as a holy man. Thus they did
also with the dead bodies of one Andrew, and of his wife
Guillemette, who were also greatly noted for their remarkable
godliness.</cite> 

<p>The Fratricelli (or Albi-Waldenses) were nevertheless,
though unjustly, accused of many and abominable crimes. Hence,
many of the ancients presume that these slanders were invented
against them for the express purpose of making them the objects
of the hatred and envy of the people; since they [the slanders]
were utterly antagonistic to the doctrine which they professed,
and with their life. For it is recorded of them, that they
called themselves true followers of the apostles, and the true
church of Christ, and that they on their part reproved the
corrupt morals of the prelates. There were also ascribed to
them all the opinions, or articles of faith, of the Waldenses
who, as already shown, also rejected infant baptism, the
swearing of oaths, revenge towards enemies, the mass, and
almost all the superstitions of the Roman church; hence it is
probable, that they were of their persuasion and had only given
themselves different names, according to the different places
where they resided. In the second book of the <i>Hist. of the
Persecutions, fol.</i> 471, col. 2, from <i>Trithemm., Citron.,
Hirsaug.,</i> A. D. 1299. Also <i>hignier,</i> A. D.1298.
<i>Hist. Eccl., ex Platina, Sabellico, Mari. Hist. Antonino
Bernhardo de Lutzenb. Bal. Cent.</i> 4, <i>Script. Brittan.
Append.</i> 2, <i>ad Joan Rufum, page</i> 384.</p><br />

<br />

<h1>AN ACCOUNT OF THE HOLY BAPTISM IN THE FOURTEENTH CENTURY: SUMMARY OF BAPTISM IN THE FOURTEENTH CENTURY</h1>

<p>[The beginning is of the congregations or churches of the
Waldenses; concerning whom it is shown that they existed not
only in this century, but long before and after, teaching that
the baptism of infants is of no avail.</p>

<p>The seventh article of the confession of the faith of the
Waldenses, touching baptism, is presented; which treats of
their confessing the faith, and change of life.</p>

<p>The belief of Dulcinus and his wife Margaret adduced, of
whom the papists say, that they were exactly like the
Waldenses.</p>

<p>For the year 1315, persons are introduced, whom the papists
regarded as heretics, because they held a belief different from
that of the Roman church; of which two articles are presented:
1. of baptism; 2. of the swearing of oaths; which is further
explained by us. For the year 1218 there is also</p>

</div><div id="323"> 

<p>shown, by way of censure, the confession of the papists.</p>

<p>Certain pious people, called apostate Minorite friars
present themselves, who are accused, by Pope John XXII, of five
articles, one of which is against the swearing of oaths, and
the other four against the papal church and her clergy.</p>

<p>Mention is made, for the years 1319, 1330, and 1365, of the
Waldenses, whose confession of faith has, in preceding
centuries, been shown not to militate against that of the
Anabaptists; a representation of the severity with which the
papists then proceeded against them.</p>

<p>John Wickliffe, A. D. 1370 adduces among other things, a
certain article, declared to militate against infant baptism;
also an article against the swearing of oaths, etc.</p>

<p>For the years 1372 and 1373, mention is made of certain
people, who, by John Tilius, are called Turilupins, but by
others are declared to have been true Waldenses.</p>

<p>Judicial proceedings (A. D. 1390) instituted against the
Waldenses, in the countries on the Baltic Sea; with the
statement that people of this profession existed in the Saxon
countries full two hundred years before the time of John
Huss.</p>

<p>Walter Brute confesses, A. D. 1392, that it is not lawful in
any case, to swear, neither by the Creator, nor by the
creatures. He also makes a good confession regarding baptism.
This is also called the doctrine of W. Swinderby.</p>

<p>J. Mehrning cites a very ancient confession of faith of the
Waldenses, which he has had in his own hands; in which it is
declared that in the beginning of Christianity no infants were
baptized.</p>

<p>Cursory notice of the Thessalian brethren, who agree with
the so-called Mennists in all articles of religion; also, of
the custom in Thessalia, of baptizing on Whitsuntide; and how
Charles, Bishop of Milan, exhorted the teachers, diligently to
expound the mystery of baptism to the hearers in order that the
confession of the Christian name might become them.</p>

<p>St. Barnabas preaching the holy Gospel at Milan, baptizes in
running water. Thereupon mention is made, in a note, for A. D.
1394, of certain people in Bohemia, who sided with the
Anabaptists. This is the conclusion.], "That the church of the Waldenses," says Jacob
Mehrning,"after her origin in France and her violent
persecution in that country, spread far and wide into Bohemia,
Poland, Lombardy, Germany, the Netherlands, and elsewhere, and
remained there from the twelfth century until the year 1545 (as
is recorded in <i>Bibliotheca Patrum, Tom.</i> 15, p. 300),
teaching the invalidity of infant baptism, is testified to by
the histories adduced in the preceding centuries, and may be
seen in <i>Sleidanus Comment.</i> 16, <i>Jac. Mehrn, Bapt.
Hist., page</i> 737, and H. <i>Mont. Nietigh., page
86."</i></p>

<p>Continuing, J. Mehrning in said place, gives an account of
the article of baptism from the confession of faith of the
Waldenses, saying, "J. Paul Perrin of Lyons, in his history of
the Waldenses, relates their confession, the seventh article of
which is as follows: 'We believe that in the sacrament of
baptism the water is the external and visible sign of the
invisible power of God, working in us the renewing of the
spirit and the mortifying of our members in Christ Jesus; by
which also we are received into the holy congregation of the
people of God, testifying and declaring, before the same, our
faith and a change of life."' Concerning this, see also <i>H.
Mont. Nietigh., page 86,</i> extracted from <i>Charles du
Meulin's</i> book of the <i>Monarchy of the French, page</i>
65.</p>

<p>Who does not see that in this place the Waldenses expressly
say that in baptism they testify and declare before God, their
faith and change of life? which was well observed afterwards by
Jacob du Bois, preacher of the Calvinists at Leyden, though he
endeavored to obscure it by his expositions, <i>Contra
Montanum,</i> printed A. D. 1648, <i>pages</i> 162, 163; but
the truth of the command of Christ, "He that believeth and is
baptized, shall be saved" (Mark 16:16), is stronger and
prevails.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1305.-The learned Leonard Krentzheim, in his
<i>Chronicle</i> writes the following concerning
Dulcinus, "Dulcinus and Margaret founded a new sect or heresy
(thus the papists speak) in every respect like the Anabaptists;
which continued until A. D. etc." P. <i>.1. Twisck, .Chron.,
page</i> 646, col. 1.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1315.-D. A. Mellinus gives an account, for this
year, of many orthodox Christians, as he calls them, who by the
papists were nevertheless styled heretics. He notices several
of their articles, which the papists charged as heresy against
them, but which we, in order to avoid prolixity, shall not
adduce here, save what is brought against them with regard to
baptism and oaths.</p>

<h2>THEIR VIEWS ON HOLY BAPTISM</h2> 

<p>Concerning baptism he writes, that it was reported of them,
that they had ridiculed the sacrament of baptism.</p>

<p>But who does not know, that if they ridiculed the sacrament
of baptism, they meant it only as far as infant baptism is
concerned; for this was the mooted question at that time.
However, Mellinus gives his opinion, which does not conflict
with ours, as to what was their belief in this matter. His
words are these, "As regards the article of the sacrament of
baptism (namely, that they should have entirely rejected it),
it must not be understood with reference to the true
institution of Christ, but to the belief of the papists, who
bind the grace of Christ and the power of the Holy Ghost to the
external water of baptism."</p>

<p><i>Page323</i></p>

<h2>THEIR VIEWS IN REGARD TO THE OATH</h2> 

<p>As regards the oath, the papists charged them with holding
that perjury is no sin."But" says A. Mellinus,"let us examine
these false articles a little more closely." Coming to the
article of the oath he speaks as follows, in order to
demonstrate the falsity of this accusation, "How should they
have considered perjury no sin, when the papists themselves (in
the <i>History of the Waldenses)</i> declare of them, that they
were so loath to swear an oath, desiring that they should be
believed on their yea and nay, in order to avoid all lying,
slandering, perjury, and frivolous swearing?" Thus far.
<i>Mellinus,</i> in the 2d <i>book</i> of the <i>Hist.,
fol.</i> 479, col. 1, 2.</p>

<p>Hence, these people sought to avoid not only false oaths,
but all manner of swearing, desiring on this account, to be
believed on their yea and nay, in accordance with the teaching
of Christ"Let your communication be, Yea, yea; Nay, nay for
whatsoever is more than these cometh of evil" (Matt. 5:37).</p>

<p><i>The same year as above, A. D.</i> 1315.-At this time,
Pope John XXII, issued a papal decree against some apostate (?)
Minorites, in which he accuses them of the following points, "Firstly, that they asserted, that there were two churches;
the one, carnal, abounding in the riches, luxuries and lusts of
this world, polluted with all manner of sin and shame, and
governed by the pope of Rome and the prelates. The other,
spiritual, temperate, pure, virtuous, honorable, and poor; to
which latter they and their adherents alone belong., "Secondly, that they declared the priests of the church, and
all her ministers, divested of the jurisdiction and authority
of their order, so that they could give neither sentence nor
advice, nor administer the sacraments, nor teach the church
under them thus depriving them of all their ecclesiastical
power, and that, on the other hand, they boasted that all
ecclesiastical authority rested with them alone, since they
ascribed the holiness of the spiritual life only to
themselves., "Their third error," as the pope says,"agrees with the error
of the Waldenses; since they both maintain that men ought in no
case to swear, teaching that it is a sin unto death to swear an
oath."</p>

<p>The fourth supposed error, the pope acknowledges, likewise
to proceed from the Waldenses, "That the priests who are
confirmed or ordained legally, according to the form or order
of the church (as he calls it), if they are laden with any
crimes or sins unto death, cannot prepare, nor administer, the
sacraments of the church."</p>

<p>The fifth error, as the pope says, was, that they said that
the Gospel of Christ, which hitherto had been covered, nay,
almost entirely extinguished, was, at this time, fulfilled in
them alone. In explanation of this article, the pope adds that
they said that they ascribed the promise of our Lord,
concerning the sending the Holy Ghost, to themselves in such a
manner as to exclude the general (the Roman) church from the
general apprehension and observance of the holy Gospel., "But see," says A. Mellinus, who has recorded this,"how the
pope perverts the meaning of these people; for they never
denied that the Holy Ghost, according to Christ's promise, was
poured out richly upon the apostles; but they denied that the
popes of Rome, who called themselves apostolic, and successors
of the apostles, had part or lot in the sending of the Holy
Ghost." Second book of the <i>Hist., fol. 480, col. 1,</i>
2.</p>

<p>Besides these five articles, the pope imputed additional
errors to these pious people, though he did not mention them
all. Hence, it appears that they concurred for the most part
with the belief of the Waldenses; and that their belief was
opposed, not only to the swearing of oaths, but also to infant
baptism, revenge, the sacrament of the altar, the mass, and
other superstitions of popery, has already been more than
sufficiently shown.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1319.-At this time, Pope John XXII, through his
inquisitors, raged mightily against the Waldenses, who made the
above-cited confession, which corresponds with that of the
Anabaptists. Of their sufferings and end we shall speak
afterwards, in the proper place. Concerning this, see Bzov.
<i>Annal., A. D.</i> 1319, <i>art. 10, ex M. S. Bibl.
Vaticane.</i> Also A. <i>Mell., fol.</i> 480, col. 3.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1330.-At this day said Waldenses were greatly
oppressed by the inquisitors, in the kingdoms of Bohemia and
Poland (see the large <i>Book of Christian Martyrs, fol.</i>
483, col. 1); which is a proof that the defenders of the above
confession existed then not only in France, but also in Bohemia
and Poland. Yea, Matthias Flaccius Illyricus professes to have
the inquisitorial books of the proceedings held at that time by
the inquisitors, in Bohemia and Poland, under King John,
against the Waldenses. <i>Catalog. Test. herit., 1.</i> 16,
<i>art.:</i> The <i>Waldenses.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-In Jacob Mehrning's History of <i>Bap</i>tism we read,
p. 609, "I have in my possession the inquisition which, A. D.
1330, in the time of King John, was held, in Bohemia and
Poland, against the Waldenses."</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1365.-The author of the books of the
Persecutions and Martyrs, records the following for the year
1365, "As there were everywhere throughout France innumerable
Beghards and Beguines (in the second book, page 479, at the
foot of the fourth column, he calls them Waldenses), who
scattered their heresy, as the papists called it, far and wide,
Pope Urban VI, A. D. 1365, charged all the prelates of France,
and the inquisitors of the faith in that country, by an express
bull, that they should not suffer the heretics to live with
impunity, but should exterminate the erring spirits (thus the
pope calls the true believers), together with their errors,
with the sickle of ecclesiastical discipline." Second book of
the <i>History of the Persecutions, fol. 488, col.</i> 1, from
Bzov., <i>A. D.</i> 1365, <i>Art. 8.</i></p>

</div><div id="325"> 

<p>A. D. 1370.--"At this time," writes Jacob Mehrning and
others,"John Wickliffe, a teacher in England, and pastor at
Lutterworth in the bishopric of Lincoln, taught, among other
things, that baptism is not necessary to the forgiveness of
original sin; thereby sufficiently opposing, or, as H. Montanus
says, rejecting, infant baptism, which is founded upon the
forgiveness of original sin. On this account, forty-one years
after his death, his bones, by order of the pope, were exhumed,
burnt, and the ashes thrown into the water." J. Mehrn., B.
Hist., pp. 737, 738, H. Mont. Nietigh., p. 87. Also Thom.
Waldens., Tone. 2, c. 96. Bellarm., Torn. 3, lib. 1, de Sacr.
Bapt., cap. 4, hicecom. de Observat. Eccles., <i>lib.</i> 2,
cap. 1.</p>

<p>NOTE. Further explanation.-That the above words of John
Wickliffe are to be understood in no other way than as having
reference to the rejection of infant baptism, and not of
baptism upon faith, is confirmed by the fourth article,
extracted from Wickliffe's Trialogue, by William Widefort, a
Minorite, and quoted by A. Mellinus. It reads as follows, "Those
who say," says John Wickliffe,"that the children of believers,
which die without baptism, are not saved, are much too
presumptuous and bold." A. Mell., 2d <i>book, fol.</i> 494,
cot. 3.</p>

<p>Moreover, that John Wickliffe opposed not only infant
baptism, but also oaths sworn to men, is testified to in the
forty-second article of his confession, delivered in the
council of Constance, and condemned there. It reads thus, "Oaths
sworn in civil contracts and commercial transactions are
unlawful." Colon. aped Orthun. Grat. A. Mell., 2d <i>book,
fol.</i> 496, cot. 1.</p>

<p>This article relative to the swearing of oaths, from the
confession of John Wickliffe, is stated by some as follows, "An
oath sworn for the purpose of confirming human contracts and
proper transactions, is not appropriate." Seb. Franck, Chron.,
der <i>Roan.</i> Kett., <i>fol. 105,</i> cot. 1, letter J.,
John. Also P. J. <i>Tzvisck,</i> Chron., p. 720, cot. 1, 2.
Tract. Kort herhael van den Loop der Werelt, <i>by F.</i> H.
H., p. 99.</p>

<p>P. J. Twlsek and others write that John Wickliffe, having
fled from England to Bohemia, propagated his doctrine there
jointly with the Waldenses, w1l~o, for the most part, agreed
with it.</p>

<p>Wickliffe also taught that the substance and essence of the
bread and wine remain in the sacrament of the altar after the
consecration.</p>

<p>That Christ is not bodily in the sacrament. That the mass is
not instituted by Christ, but is the devil's obedience and
word. That confirmation, fasts, consecrations of priests, the
baptizing of temples, and bells, are retained by the pope and
the bishops only from the desire for gain.</p>

<p>That universities, studies, doctorates, colleges, grades,
and masterships, are things which we have</p>

<br /><cite>* Hence, when Wickliffe rejects the swearing of
oaths in civil or human contracts, he rejects all swearing of
all oaths that have ever been in question; for not the promises
which are made to God but the oaths that are sworn to men, have
been from ancient times, and are still, the matter in question.
inherited from the heathen, and are altogether of as much use
to the church as the devil. An improper oath is, etc.</cite> 

<p>Merula and others state that Wickliffe wrote full two
hundred books, and diligently instructed, and turned from
popery, John Huss (see A. D. 1415 and 1416), when the latter
was still young, together with many others. P. J.
<i>Tutisck,</i> Chron., p. 720, cot. 1, 2, from Leonh., <i>lib.
6.</i> Hist. Andr. Junii, <i>f of</i> 45. Jan. Cresrin.,
fol<i>.</i> 354. Guil. Mer<i>ula, fol. 886.</i> Toneel.
Niclaes, fol<i>.</i> 119. <i>Zegh., fol.</i> 119.</p>

<p>NOTE.-That John Huss (though the Calvinists would like to
claim him, as well as John Wickliffe), was opposed to the
swearing of oaths, and had other articles in common with the
Waldensian Anabaptist brethren, and that he learned this from
John Wickliffe, and Wickliffe from said Waldensian brethren, we
hope to make clear in its proper place.</p>

<p>As to the article which Wickliffe was said to have taught,
namely, that everything happens by an absolute or unavoidable
necessity, on this D. A. Mellinus, a Calvinistic preacher,
remarks, "We suspect that this has been unjustly put on
Wickliffe, by the malicious enemies of the truth" (2;d <i>book,
fol.</i> 495, cot. 4). Afterwards, explaining it still further,
he says that"This is a wanton slander and devilish lie,
fabricated from nothing, and cast into the face of innocent
John Wickliffe." <i>Fol.</i> 496, cot. 1.</p>

<p>Thus it is evident, that John Wickliffe, even according to
the testimony of the Calvinists, did not maintain the article
of precise predestination, as some before him, though wrongly,
have believed.</p>

<p>NOTE.-If John Wickliffe did not hold the article of
predestination or unavoidable necessity, as one of the
Calvinistic teachers here asserts and holds as truth, what,
then, did he retain, in the matter of his belief, that accords
only with the Calvinistic church? Certainly nothing.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1372.-John Tylius, in his <i>Chronicle of the
Kings of France,</i> writes, for the year 1372, concerning
certain people whom he terms Turilupins, and, in papistic
manner, very contemptuously calls a superstition, as
follows, "The superstition of the Turilupins (a kind of
Waldenses), who took their surname from the poverty common to
them all, were this year condemned as heretics, together with
their writings, books and clothes." J. Tyl., <i>Chron., Reg.
Gall. A. Mell., fol.</i> 497, cot. 3. Of their faith we shall
presently speak.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1373.-Vignierus writes concerning these people
called Turilupins, and their doctrine, that they were
pronounced heretics at Paris, by the inquisitors, and their
books publicly burnt, together with one of their women. Hut.
Eccles., A. <i>D.</i> 1373. <i>ex Guil. de Nangis.</i> A.
<i>Mell., same place.</i> More anon.</p>

<p>NOTE.-A fuller account of the death of this woman will be
given in its proper place, in the history of the martyrs.</p>

</div><div id="326"> 

<h2>OF THE UPRIGHTNESS OF THESE PEOPLE</h2> 

<p>The author of the second book of the <i>Perse</i>cutions,
relating how these people, called Turilupins, were accused by
some papistic writers, of not living honestly, replies in their
stead, saying, "But these poor people are lamentably slandered;
for they were upright Waldenses, to whom the papists imputed
whatever they would." Fol. 497, cot. 3.</p>

<h2>OF THE NAME OF THESE PEOPLE</h2> 

<p>As regards their name, Joachine Caudarius states that they
obtained the name of Turilupins, in Flanders, Artois, and
Hainault, because they lived in wildernesses, among the wolves.
In <i>lugibri Narrat. de excidio Wald. Alb., A. M., same
place.</i></p>

<h2>OF THE BELIEF OF THESE PEOPLE</h2> 

<p>It may be observed here, that if these Turilupins were true
Waldenses, as has been declared, they rejected infant baptism,
the swearing of oaths, revenge towards enemies, the mass, and
all other Roman inventions, as appears from their own
confession shown above.</p>

<p>NOTE.-Henry de Haffra, at Vienna, A. D.1376, wrote on
Genesis, and greatly reproved the lies of the Romish legends,
and about the merits of the saints. In a letter he also
censured the clergy and their head, the pope, for many errors.
<i>loh. Munst., fol.</i> 174, compared with the <i>Chronicle of
the. Destruction of the Tyrants, p.</i> 724, cot. 1.</p>

<p>Also: A. D. 1380, Michael Cesenas, formerly a Minorite
friar, or monk, wrote against the pope, calling him (from II
Thess. 2) antichrist, and the Roman church, Babylon, and the
congregation of those drunk with the blood of the saints. The
pope deposed him from his dignity; but he adhered steadfastly
to his opinion. <i>Joh. Munst., fol.</i> 171. <i>Catal. Test.,
fol.</i> 691, compared with P. <i>J. Twisck, Chron., p.</i>
731.</p>

<p>Also: In the same year Nicholas Clemongis opposed the
superstitious feast days, excessive eating and drinking, (evil)
speaking, and other improper things. See the last-mentioned
chronicle, r. 732, from <i>Joh. Munst., fol.</i> 170.</p>

<p>Also: About A. D. 1382, M. Matthaeus Parisiensis, a
Bohemian, appeared, and wrote a large book concerning
antichrist, (the pope), saying that he had already come, and
could be found in Rome. Thus did also Lupoldbs de Bedenborgh.
Compare <i>P. J. Tzvisck, Chron., Q.</i> 734, cot. 1, with
<i>Catal. Test., fol.</i> 794, 796. <i>Merula, fol.</i>
890.</p>

<p>Also: A. D. 1384, John Muntziger, Rector of the school at
01m, read in his oration, that the supposed body of Christ
should not be made God, and, hence, should not be worshiped as
God. See the last-mentioned author, <i>fol.</i> 736, cot. 1,
compared with <i>Hist. Joh. Munst., fol.</i> 171.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1390.-Or about that time, mention is made of
the Waldenses in the countries lying on the Baltic Sea;
concerning whom Matthias Flac cius Illyricus states that he has
an entire inquisitorial book, full of the proceedings held
against the godly Waldenses who lived in those countries.</p>

<p>Said Illyricus also had among his writings, another brief
inquisition or investigation against the Waldenses; such as
formerly was practiced against them in the bishopric of
Mayence. He moreover says that he has still another, large
book, full of proceedings held by the inquisitors against the
Waldenses; in which 443 Waldenses are mentioned by name, who
about A. D. 1391, in Pomerania, the Mark, and the adjacent
places, were put on the rack and examined on the articles once
confessed by the Waldenses. Many of these martyrs or confessors
freely testified and confessed that they had been, one twenty,
another thirty years, among this sect. Also, that their
forefathers held the same doctrine. <i>Matth. Flacc. Ill.
Catal. Test. herit., lib.</i> 18. <i>Lib. 15,Title, De
Waldensibus.</i></p>

<p>NOTE. From this it appears, writes a certain author, that
the Saxon countries were full of Waldenses, that is, orthodox
Christians, already two hundred years, and more, before the
time of Huss. For it can easily be computed, that when the 443
Waldenses were examined at once, there must have been an
incomparably greater number who were not examined in regard to
their faith, but concealed themselves, or took to flight, in
order to escape the danger. And, truly, those who are noticed
in the book, as having been examined, frequently mentioned very
many others of their belief, who were not present.</p>

<p>Among other points relating to their trials, recorded in
this inquisitional book, were these, "That they were sober and
frugal people, discreet in their speech, careful to avoid
lying, swearing, etc.'; <i>A. Mell.,</i> 2d <i>book, fol. 505,
cot.</i> 3, 4. Also, P. <i>J. Tzadsck, Chron., p.</i> 743, cot.
2, from <i>Henr. Boxhorn, fol.</i> 27. In the margin of the
same page, Twisck says, "The Wandenses (or Waldenses) will not
swear."</p>

<p>NOTE.-A. D. 1390, the Lord raised up Richard Withe, who
wrote many glorious things against the pope, or the blasphemy
of the so-called antichrist. <i>Bal. Cent., lib.</i> 7,
<i>cap.</i> 10, compared with <i>Chron. van den Ondergang,
page</i> 734, cot. 1, 2.</p>

<p>A. D. 1392.-On the 13th of January of this year, Walter
Brute, a layman, but nevertheless a learned man, from the
bishopric of Hereford, appearing personally before Lord John,
Bishop of Hereford, maintained, among several other articles
militating against the Roman church, this point, "That Christians are not permitted, for any reason, in any
case, to swear, either by the Creator or by His creatures." A.
<i>Mell.,</i> 2d <i>book, fol. 506,</i> cot. 3.</p>

<h2>NOTICE-THE BELIEF OF WILLIAM SWINDERBY COMPARED WITH THAT OF WALTER BRUTE</h2> 

<p>Since Walter Brute is called (Fol. 505, cot. 4,) a defender
of the articles of William Swinderby,</p>

</div><div id="327"> 

<p>who was afterwards burnt for the faith, in Smithfield,
London, it is quite evident, that William Swinderby must have
held the same belief, which, as well as many other articles,
they both had in common with the Waldenses. Besides, this
article of nonswearing, together with the other two related in
this connection, is unmistakably called William Swinderby's
article (Fol. 506, col. 3,), so that both of them, speaking as
with one tongue, are also together charged here, with having
prohibited all manner of oaths.</p>

<h2>THAT, BESIDES THE ARTICLE RESPECTING THE OATH, HE ALSO MADE A GOOD CONFESSION IN REGARD TO HOLY BAPTISM</h2> 

<p>It appears, moreover, from the confession of faith of Walter
Brute, that also infant baptism was not recognized by him; for
he speaks in the following manner concerning the burial of
Christ</p>

<p>He (Christ) was buried, that we all by baptism, might be
buried together with Him into His death; in order that having
died unto sin (notice, this is no work for infants), we should
live unto righteousness * A. M., from Fox <i>Angl., p.</i>
440.</p>

<h2>OF A CERTAIN ANCIENT CONFESSION OF FAITH OF THE WALDENSIAN BRETHREN</h2> 

<p>Jacob Mehrning, writing on the fourteenth century, touching
baptism, says, "I have had in my hands a very old confession of
some Waldensian brethren in Bohemia, printed in the German
language, in which they expressly confess that in the beginning
of Christianity no infants were baptized; and that also their
forefathers did not do it," as John Bohemius writes.
<i>Lib.</i> 2, <i>Gentium Moribus</i>, "In former times baptism was wont to be administered only to
those who were previously instructed in the faith, and examined
seven times in the week before Easter and Whitsuntide; these
were then baptized upon the confession of their faith; but when
baptism was afterwards deemed necessary to salvation, it was
also ordained, by the papists, that new-born infants should be
baptized, and that sponsors should be assigned them, who
confessed the faith, and renounced the devil, in their stead."
<i>Bapt. Hist., p.</i> 738.</p>

<p><i>About A. D.</i> 1400.-D. J. Vicecomes cites from this
century (from Nicephorus Callistus), <i>lib. 1,</i> cap. 23,
that in Thessalia, baptism was administered only on
Whitsuntide;** on which account many died without baptism., "Thus," remarks Jacob Mehrning on this,"we are informed,
that even at this day there are brethren and Christians in
Thessalonica, who agree with the Mennists in all articles of
religion." These are J. Mehrning's own words (page 739), of
which we shall speak more fully hereafter.</p>

<br /><cite>* This article has direct reference to the words
which Paul wrote to the believing Romans, "Know ye not, that so
many of us as were baptized into Jesus Christ were baptized
into his death?" (Rom. 6:3).</cite> 

<br /><cite>* Others say, on Easter,</cite> 

<h2>OF CHARLES, BISHOP OF MILAN</h2> 

<p><i>Bapt. Hist., p.</i> 740, <i>D. Vicecomes, lib.</i> 5,
<i>cap.</i> 45, writes, "Charles, bishop of Milan, admonished
the teachers, diligently to expound to their hearers the
mystery of holy baptism, and to earnestly exhort them to a
Christian walk, in order that the confession of the Christian
name (upon which baptism was wont to be administered), might
well become them."</p>

<p>What else does this indicate, than that the teachers should
exhort their hearers to the baptism, which ought to be
administered upon confession of faith, and, consequently, not
in infancy?</p>

<p>Galvaneus, in the History of Milan, <i>(B. H., page</i> 741,
<i>D. Vicecomes, lib. 1, cap.</i> 4), writes, "St. Barnabas,
when he first preached the Gospel at Milan, baptized in running
water."</p>

<p>This manner and these circumstances plainly indicate, as
stated elsewhere, that infant baptism was then not practiced at
that place.</p>

<p>NOTE.-For the year 1394, mention is made of a number of
people in Bohemia, who sided with the Anabaptists. <i>Seb. Fr.
Chron. der Rom. Kett., p. 121, col. 2, letter P.,
Picardy.</i></p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1400.-It appears that when the last year of
this century had come, various persons opposed popery, not only
with regard to baptism, but also to many other articles; of
which, among other things, mention is made in the fourteenth
book of the <i>Ondergang der Tyrannen, p.</i> 749, col. 1,
<i>2,</i> 3; where we have this declaration, "The pope has no
absolute power or judgment, so that he cannot err; so all, even
the papists, have taught for about fourteen hundred years. The
ancient fathers, the Greek as well as the Latin, regarded Pope
Honorius I as a Monothelitic* heretic. Likewise, the sixth
synod, in which he was condemned as a heretic, and his letters
burned. From <i>Perkins, fol.</i> 421.</p>

<p>NoTE.-If this condemning of the pope as a heretic, as also
the burning of his letters, was done from envy, or bitterness,
we would by no means defend, much less praise, but far rather
condemn it. But since, as the matter appears to us, it was done
from a good intention and godly zeal, we find nothing
censurable in it. For the word con<i>demn</i> does not always
signify eternal damnation, as the Holy Scripture uses it,** but
it is also understood as meaning, to sentence or pronounce
guilty. Thus, also, the name heretic, when rightly considered,
signifies only a schismatic, headstrong person, who follows his
own opinion, instead of the Holy Scripture. Now, that the Pope
of Rome was such a person, will not soon be contradicted by
those who give due honor to God, and allow themselves to be
governed by reason. The burning of</p>

<br /><cite>* Others say, a Monocholite.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* To an English reader this explanation will
seem not only superfluous, but, perhaps, even obscure and
contradictory. Let him be reminded that the work originally was
written in the Dutch language, which such explanation of the
word in question ("verdoemen") is entirely in
place. -Transl.</cite> 

</div><div id="328"> 

<p>his letters we regard as having been done from carefulness,
lest any might be seduced or brought into error by them. This
will satisfy the well-disposed, who, imitating the bee, will
extract honey, instead of gall, from it.</p>

<h2>SAME YEAR AS ABOVE, A. D. 1400</h2> 

<p>The universities of Prague in Bohemia, Oxford in England,
and Paris in France, wrote against the apostasy of the Roman
church, and demanded a reformation, saying that the scandalous
life of the pope and the cardinals could not be tolerated; that
the popes and cardinals were liable to err, and had frequently
erred; and that the blessed Son of God, though having suffered
much from the synagogue of the Jews, had to suffer much more
from the princes of the papal synagogue. Concerning similar
censures, read the books of Ulric of Hutten, the Frankish
knight, printed A. D. 1520.</p>

<h2>SAME YEAR AS ABOVE, A. D. 1400</h2> 

<p>John Tauler, a German divine, said, at this time, in his
book of sermons, "Our prelates (he means the rulers of the Roman
church), are blind, and leaders of the blind; and it is to be
feared that they both together will be condemned."</p>

<p>He also spoke much of the persecution, tribulation,
hardship, and suffering, a Christian must expect here; but did
not say that one should inflict sufferings one upon
another.</p>

<p>Read all his sermons, but particularly the 11th, 15th and
31st chapters in his book, where he treats of suffering; also
the first-mentioned author, in the place indicated.</p>

<p>NoTE.-That John Tauler was a very pious and highly educated
man, appears from very many testimonies given concerning him.
Truly, he was as a flaming torch in his time, to lighten up, by
his doctrine as well as his life, the dark night of perversely
religious popery. But if he still erred in anything, which may
easily have been the case, it is all overbalanced by his virtue
and learning. Nevertheless, we could not defend errors, neither
in him nor in others. Our love must never be so blind as to
hinder us from seeing a blemish (if there is any) in what we
love. But he who has not lived so that his errors are apparent,
should, herein, if he is otherwise well disposed, be borne
with; and this the more, when he has to live among so
disorderly a people, as popery was then composed of, and can
obtain no other liberty. Such was John Tauler, and as such we
will recognize him. Our love will and shall bear his weakness.
Hence, dismissing this, we will turn to the pious witnesses of
the Lord, who laid down their dear lives for the truth which
they confessed.</p>

 

<h1>AN ACCOUNT OF THOSE WHO SUFFERED IN THE
FOURTEENTH CENTURY: SUMMARY OF THE MARTYRS OF THE FOURTEENTH CENTURY</h1>

<p>[The exordium to the entrance of this century is taken from
the places where most of the martyrs suffered at this time, as
also from the circumstances of their suffering and death.</p>

<p>The manner of inquisition over the believers in these times,
shown in divers articles, for the year 1301, according to the
account of jean Paul Perrin Lyonnois.</p>

<p>Dulcinus and his wife Margaret, who, as L. Kreutzheim says,
founded a sect alike in every respect to the Anabaptists, are
torn limb from limb; and with them one hundred and forty
others, burnt for the same faith, at Novaria, in Lombardy, A.
D. 1308.</p>

<p>Very many persons at Crema (probably Krems), in Austria,
burnt for the religion of the orthodox Waldenses; also at
Steyer, in the same Austrian territories, and at Zuidenitz, in
Poland, all of whom are put to death by being burned, A. D.
1315.</p>

<p>Two years after, namely, A. D. 1317, four persons, called
<i>Brethren of the Poor Life,</i> or Waldenses, miserably
perish, on red-hot coals, at Marseilles, in France.</p>

<p>A persecution of the believing Waldenses, instituted by Pope
John XXII, set forth for the year 1319, from the accounts of
the ancients. This persecution extended A. D. 1330, into
Bohemia and Poland; one Eckhard burned for the before-mentioned
faith.</p>

<p>NOTE.-For the years 1336, 1340, 1350 and 1360, of the
frankness of John de Pistoia, Conrad Hager, John de Landuno,
John de Rupe Scissa, who did not hesitate to point out to the
pope his errors. Also what happened to them on this
account.</p>

<p>Another persecution of the Waldensian brethren in France,
originated A. D. 1365, by Pope Urban VI, adduced from his own
bull.</p>

<p>Eight years after, namely, A. D. 1373, still another
persecution is shown, which arose in Flanders, Artois and
Hainault, in which Peronne, of Aubeton, a pious woman of the
Waldensian religion, offered up her life to God, by fire.</p>

<p>Thirty-six persons called Waldenses are burnt for the faith,
at Bingen, A. D. 1390.</p>

<p>A severe persecution of ancient Waldenses arises again on
the Baltic Sea, four hundred and fortythree of whom are
severely tortured, and put to death, in the Mark and in
Pomerania, A. D. 1391.</p>

<p>The sufferings of the Christian believers, caused by those
of the Roman church, in which one William Santrus, who censured
the pope, loses his life, circumstantially shown, for the last
year of this century, A. D. 1400,</p>

</div><div id="329"> 

<p>In a note, the testimony of Franciscus Petrarcha against the
pope is brought to recollection; on account of which opposition
he had to suffer expulsion and persecution from the Roman
dominions. Conclusion of the tragedy of the fourteenth century.
]</p>

<p>With few steps we shall make a long journey, and our course
will be not less wonderful than sad. The places through which
we will first travel are the mountains of Lombardy, near
Novaria. In the midst of our journey, we will come to the
cities Crema and Steyer, in Austria, Zuidenitz, in Poland, and
Marseilles, in France. Thence we propose to proceed into
Bohemia; and at last to finish our journey in the countries on
the Baltic Sea.</p>

<p>What will we meet on our way, dear friends? Certainly
nothing that is pleasing to the flesh; for fire and flames
shall threaten us on our right hand, and deep waters on our
left. Between them there is nothing but bloody scaffolds,
gallows, wheels, stakes and countless horrible instruments of
death and torture, which cause men to die slowly, as by a
thousand deaths. The company is composed altogether of bodies
burned, drowned, beheaded or otherwise murdered; so that our
footsteps must tread through the midst of skulls and dead men's
bones; to say nothing of the crimson blood, which seems to flow
in rivulets, yea, sometimes in large streams, along the ways
which we must travel.</p>

<p>Nevertheless, our heart is full of joy, and we are delighted
with this journey, and draw life in the valleys of death; for
here is the portal of heaven, the door of the blissful palace,
which is indeed strait, yea, on the posts of which flesh and
blood remain; but through which is the entrance into the
spaciousness of the heavenly halls, and into the infinite and
ever-blooming garden of the blessed paradise. Here are heard,
with the ears of faith, as near by the glad voices of the holy
angels,* to which no singing of nightingales in earthly groves
can be compared; nay, the most lovely instruments of music,
when compared with these sound harshly and unpleasantly to the
ear. There are also beheld, as with unclouded eyes, the majesty
of God, Jesus, the Saviour of the world, and the heavenly
societies. We dare not further speak of it,** for human ear
hath not heard nor eye seen; neither have entered into the
heart of man, the things which God hath prepared for them that
love Him. I Cor. 2:9.</p>

<p>All this is there perceived in the soul, though the bodies
suffer great distress; but this is soon over. Have we no
reason, then, to long for this journey? Certainly. Hence, let
us go on. The Lord guide us and show us the right way, that we
may not only begin well, but also finish well.</p>

<p>O ye slain and martyred multitudes, who have testified with
your blood to the name of your and</p>

<br /><cite>*"Glory to God in the highest" (Luke 2:14).</cite> 

<br /><cite>* And (he) heard unspeakable (unrevealed) words,
which it is not lawful for a man to utter. II Cor. 12:4. our
God, we have come to behold your martyrdom, and to make it
known, by writings, to our fellow brethren; not that we intend
to make a pilgrimage to the places of your death, to salute you
in the manner of worship, or to bring you an oblation, after
the manner of the priests, by no means; for this would profit
neither you nor us; but we seek to bring to remembrance your
good examples. With this we will begin.</cite> 

<p>NOTE.-Before we approach the sad mountains and fields of the
miserable, but nevertheless well comforted martyrs, it will be
necessary to give an account respecting the mode of the
inquisition which, having commenced in the preceding century
already, had continued even to this time, and was the cause of
all the harm and distress which now came upon the believers,
and through which they had to suffer, first in their
consciences, and then in their bodies, yea, were subjected to
the most bitter and cruel death.</p>

<p>In the preceding century, for the years 1214 and 1215, we
showed the beginnings of the inquisition; we now come to its
progress and extension.</p>

<h2>OF THE MODE OF INQUISITION OVER THE BE LIEVERS, IN THESE TIMES, ACCORDING TO THE ACCOUNT OF JEAN PAUL PERRIN LION NOYS, AND THE TRANSLATION OF J. M. V., AND B. LYDIUS</h2> 
<p>As regards the deceitful course," says the
translator,"which the afore-mentioned inquisitors were wont to
take in the execution of their office, we would have no
knowledge, save what some believers who escaped the Spanish
Inquisition, could have told us concerning it. But it was not
the will of God that these, their wiles, should remain hid, and
that we should obtain no copies thereof, written by themselves.
Behold, then, the cunning artifices of the inquisitors, which
served them for rules and instructions, in conducting the
processes against the Waldenses.</p>

<h2>RULES OF THE INQUISITORS</h2> 

<p>1. It is not permitted or advisable to dispute concerning
the faith in the presence of the laity.</p>

<p>2. No one is to be regarded as converted, if he will not
accuse all those whom he knows to be such as he is.</p>

<p>3. He who does not accuse those who are such as he is, must
be severed from the church as a diseased member; that the sound
members may not become corrupted by it.</p>

<p>4. After any one is delivered to the secular judge, great
care must be exercised, that he be not allowed to prove his
innocence, or show his harmlessness before the people; for if
he is put to death, the people will take offense; and if he is
discharged, the (Catholic) faith will be endangered.</p>

<p>5. Care must be taken not to promise his life; before the
people, to him who is condemned to</p>

</div><div id="330"> 

<p>death (namely, if he indicates his willingness to become
converted); seeing that no heretic would allow himself to be
burned, if he could escape by such a promise; and if he should
promise conversion before the people, and his life would not be
granted him thereupon, the people would take offense at it, and
think that he were put to death unjustly.</p>

<p>6. Observe: The inquisitor must always take the deed for
granted, without any consideration, and ask the questions only
in regard to the circumstances of the matter, not saying: Have
you made confession to the heretics? but, How often have _you
made your confession to the heretics? Again, do not ask: Have
they slept in your house? but, In what room of your house did
they sleep? and the like.</p>

<p>7. The inquisitor may look into a book, as though he had
noted down in it, the life and conduct of the accused, together
with everything in regard to which he is interrogating him.</p>

<p>8. The accused must be threatened with death, if he will not
confess, and be told that his doom is sealed; that he must
regard his soul, and, first of all, forsake his heresy;"For,"
it shall be said,"you must die; accept with patience whatever
shall befall you." If he then answer, "Since I must die, I would
rather die in this my faith, than in the faith of the Roman
church," rest assured, that previously he only pretended to be
desirous of becoming converted; and therefore he must then be
brought to justice.</p>

<p>9. The thought is not to be entertained of overcoming the
heretics by skill of learning, or knowledge of the Scriptures,
since the learned men are much sooner confounded by them; the
result of which is, that the heretics are then still more
confirmed and encouraged, seeing they thus outwit even those
who are educated.</p>

<p>10. It is to be well observed, that the heretics never speak
right out, and that, when compelled by much questioning, they
generally allege that they are simple and unlearned men, and,
hence, know not how to answer; and that, seeing that the
bystanders are moved to compassion for them, as though they
were wronged, regarding them as simple and harmless people,
they take courage from this and pretend to weep, as poor,
miserable men, and, imploring their judges, make strenuous
efforts to free themselves from the inquisition, saying;"My
Lords, if I have erred in any matter, I will gladly accept the
penance for it; but assist me to free myself from this
reproach, in which I have fallen throu0 hatred and envy,
without having transgressed. '</p>

<p>But the courageous inquisitor must then in no wise be moved
by such entreaties, nor give credit to such dissimulations.</p>

<p>11. Moreover, the inquisitor shall announce to them
beforehand, that they will gain nothing by swearing falsely
(from necessity); since they (the lords) have matter enough to
convict them by wit nesses; and that therefore they need not
think that by means of swearing they will escape sentence of
death; but it must be promised them, that as far as they
voluntarily confess their error, they shall obtain mercy; for
in such perplexity many are found, who confess their errors, in
order to escape., "Behold," says the writer of this inquisition,"these are the
cunning artifices formerly employed by the inquisitors
throughout Europe against the Waldenses," etc. In the second
book of the first part of the <i>History of the Waldenses,</i>
by J. P. <i>P. L., pages</i> 62, 63, 64.</p>

<p>NOTE: About this time (A. D. 1303) Peter Johannis taught
that the pope was the antichrist, and the Roman synagogue the
great Babylon. About his martyrdom, however, we have not been
able to learn anything. See P. J: <i>Twisck, Chron.,</i> Q.
643, col. 2, from <i>Georg. Pac., cap. 11.</i></p>

<h2>DULCINUS AND HIS WIFE MARGARET, TORN LIMB FROM LIMB; AND, WITH THEM, AN HUNDRED AND FORTY OTHERS BURNT FOR THE FAITH, AT NOVARIA, IN LOMBARDY, A. D. 1308</h2> 

<p>About the year 1305, the light of the evangelical doctrine
began to arise with power also on the mountains of Lombardy,
called the-Alps, through a pious man, called Dulcinus of
Novaria, and his wife, who, having accepted the orthodox faith
of the Waldensian brethren, excelled most gloriously in
doctrine and life, so that Dulcinus by his doctrine, and his
wife by her good example, and both by their living and
effective faith, opened the eyes of several others, and caused
them to separate from popery, and follow Jesus Christ, in true
penitence and uprightness of life, which they did in full
earnestness for the love of Jesus Christ and the salvation of
their souls.</p>

<p>But even as it was in the time of John the Baptist, that
many unregenerated Pharisees and Sadducees came to his baptism,
so it seems also to have been here; for it appears that some
who seemed to adhere to his doctrine, lived at the same time in
anger, revenge, and after the flesh; which, as may be presumed,
grieved this good man and his wife, as also the church which he
had founded, and which desired piously to adhere to the
doctrine of Christ, very greatly.</p>

<p>In the meantime, about the year 1307, Pope Clement V,
receiving information thereof, condemned said pious man
Dulcinus and his wife Margaret as arch-heretics, and commanded
them, as well as their adherents, to be exterminated. To
accomplish this, many Romanists, who had marked themselves with
the sign of the cross, lent their services; who charged the
misdeeds of the hypocrites also upon the pious, and thus
endeavored to extirpate them both together; the pious,
however,</p>

<p>with far more severe and intolerable torments, than the
hypocrites.</p>

<p>Thus it happened that this pious man Dulcinus and his wife,
refusing to depart from the faith,</p>

</div><div id="331"> 

<p>were torn limb from limb by them, burnt to ashes, and the
ashes scattered to the winds. The principal members of the
church, one hundred and forty in number, loving Jesus Christ,
whom they had confessed, more than this temporal life, were
all, as they steadfastly adhered to the accepted truth burnt
alive, and thus, having commended their souls to God, offered
up a living sacrifice acceptable unto God, about the year
1308.</p>

<p>NOTE.-These were the people of whom Leonhard Krentzheim has
written in his <i>Chronicle,</i> as already noted,
saying, "Dulcinus and Margaret founded a new sect or heresy
(thus speak the papists) alike in every respect to the
Anabaptists, which continued until, etc."</p>

<p>Touching their martyrdom, A. Mellinus writes, from some
ancient books of history, that they were first torn limb from
limb, and then, as we stated above, burnt to ashes. This
martyrdom, the papistic historians themselves confess, not only
the men, but also the women, endured very steadfastly unto
death, in the city of Novaria, in Lombardy. In the <i>second
book</i> of the <i>Persecutions, fol.</i> 477, col. 4,
<i>fol.</i> 478, col. 1, from <i>Prat. de Haeres. Tit. Dulcin.
ex Bernhardo Lutzenburgh.</i></p>

<h2>FURTHER OBSERVATION-WHAT P. J. TWISCK HAS WRITTEN
CONCERNING IT</h2>  
<p>"This year," he writes,"many pious people were cruelly
destroyed for their religion, by order of Pope Clement V. Over
four hundred persons were killed by hunger, cold, and the sword
(of these, however, we do not speak here), and one hundred and
forty were burned (these are the ones of whom we speak), the
principal teacher of whom, together with his wife, very
steadfastly endured death." <i>Chron., page</i> 649. A. from
<i>Henr. Boxh., fol.</i> 26.</p>

<p>NOTE.-The reader should observe here, that said hundred and
forty martyrs, who at Novaria were put to death by fire, are
called special followers of the doctrine of Dulcinus, are to be
clearly distinguished from a certain other number of about four
hundred persons who, having been surrounded on the mountain, by
the pope's crusade, lost their lives by hunger, cold, and the
sword; for not the latter, but the former, are the ones whom we
would notice here.</p>

<h2>TOUCHING THEIR FAITH, ACCORDING TO THE ACCOUNT OF
A. MELLINUS</h2> 

<p>Concerning their faith, A. Mellinus says, "From this it can
be clearly inferred, that Dulcinus and his wife, and many other
martyrs with them, died for the true confession of the doctrine
of the Waldenses; because they opposed the Pope of Rome, and
the Roman church, maintaining him to be the antichrist, and her
the Babylonian whore prophesied of in John's Revelation."
<i>Second book, fol.</i> 478, A.</p>

<h2>VERY MANY PERSONS BURNT FOR THE FAITH, AT CREMA, IN AUSTRIA, A. D. 1315</h2> 

<p>A. D. 1315, very many orthodox Christians were sought,
found, and burnt as heretics, by the Dominicans, or
inquisitors, in the city of Crema, (probably Krems), under the
bishopric of Passau, in the archduchy of Austria. In the
<i>second book</i> of the <i>Persecutions, fol.</i> 479, col.
1, <i>ex Trithem. Chron. Hirsaug.,</i> A. <i>D.</i> 1315, p.
211, <i>edit. Freheri.</i></p>

<h2>CONCERNING THESE MARTYRS, ACCORDING TO THE ACCOUNT OF TRITHEMIUS</h2> 

<p>The papist Trithemius says, "There were further, in Austria,
in different places, very many burnt alive at this time
(namely, A. D. 1315), all of whom unanimously, yet obstinately
(we say steadfastly), continued with great joy, unto death.
<i>Trith. in Chron. Hirsaug.,</i> and <i>Chron. Scent;onh.,
same dear.</i></p>

<h2>WHAT P. J. TWISCK HAS WRITTEN CONCERNING THIS</h2> 

<p>In Austria, near Passau, a great number of the Waldenses or
believers were apprehended for their religion, and publicly
burned alive in the city of Crema, adhering steadfastly to
their faith, and evincing in the midst of the flames, that the
death and pain which they suffered for the honor of God, and
the truth, were sweet to them. <i>Chron., p.</i> 657, col. 1,
from <i>Henr. Boxh., fol.</i> 27. <i>Phil. Marnix Tafer.,
fol</i> 141.</p>

<p>NOTE.-Immediately after the account of the martyrs, noticed
for the year 1315, the same author speaks of their teacher,
their great number, and comfortful martyrdom; for, after
saying, that to many of them death and pain were sweet, he adds
these words, "Which, among others, appeared also in the case of
their teacher, called Lolhard, who confessed in his trial, that
in the countries of Austria and Bohemia alone he could find
eighty thousand persons who were one with him in religion."
<i>Chron., page</i> 657, col. 2, taken from the writers
cited.</p>

<p>NoTE.-These are the same people whose confession relative to
baptism, the swearing of oaths, and other articles, we have
shown to accord well with that of the Anabaptists. Concerning
this, see our account of the orthodox faith for the fourteenth
century, year 1315, and the testimonies adduced there.</p>

<h2>MANY PERSONS CALLED WALDENSES MARTYRED AT STEYER, IN AUSTRIA, AND GREAT NUMBERS OF THEM BURNT FOR THE FAITH, AT ZUI DENITZ, IN POLAND, A. D. 1315</h2> 

<p>Matthias Flaccius Illysicus (Catal. Test. herit., lib. 19,
Tit. Stier.) declares to have heard from the lips of Michael
Stifelius, that in a certain monastery, in the city of Steyer,
situated between Austria</p>

</div><div id="332"> 

<p>and Bavaria, three large books containing the confessions
and examinations of very many persons who had departed in
belief from the Roman church, were found.</p>

<p>I presume, says Illyricus, they were Waldenses, a great
number of whom were formerly scattered not only in Austria and
all Germany, but also throughout all the countries of
Europe., "And truly," says a certain author,"Illyricus is not
mistaken in his conjecture." In the meantime he calls them
martyrs, but does not state in what their martyrdom consisted,
or with. what death they confirmed the power of their faith.
See the large Book of <i>Christian Martyrs, fol. 479, cot. 3,
4.</i></p>

<h2>OF THE ACCOUNT OF ALBERT KRANTZ, CONCERN ING THE DEATH OF THESE MARTYRS</h2> 

<p>Albert Krantz also writes, in his <i>History of the
Vandals,</i> of very many such (so-called) heretics, namely,
Waldenses, in Poland, in the city of Zuidenitz, concerning
whom, he says, according to the manner of the papists, that
they disturbed the church there, in consequence of which,
having been convicted of heresy against the Roman church, great
numbers of them ended their lives in the flames. <i>Hist.
Vand., lib. 8,</i> near the end. Also, <i>A. Mell., 2d book,
fol. 479.</i></p>

<p>Their confession, which agrees with that of the Anabaptists
has already been explained, which explanation it is not
necessary to repeat; hence it is not to be doubted, but is an
established fact, that these people were all pious witnesses of
Jesus Christ, who for His name's sake did not spare their lives
even unto death.</p>

<h2>FOUR PERSONS, CALLED BRETHREN OF THE POOR LIFE, OR WALDENSES, BURNT FOR THE FAITH, AT MARSEILLES, IN FRANCE, A. D. <i>1317</i></h2> 

<p>Now when the light of the Gospel began to break forth
greatly from the doctrine of the Waldenses, which militated
against the papal inventions, this also manifested itself in a
monastery, among the Franciscan monks; so that particularly
four of the order of the Minorites, their eyes being opened,
separated from monachism, and at the same time from the
superstitions of popery, desiring thenceforth to follow and
serve Jesus Christ, their Savious, not in a simulated, but in
true poverty, with, in, or among the cross-bearing church of
God, called the Poor Men of Lyons, Brethren of the Poor Life,
or Waldenses; who also opposed infant baptism, the swearing of
oaths, revenge against enemies, and other articles of the Roman
church.</p>

<p>Against this, Pope John XXII issued a papal decree, directed
against the Fratricelli (Little Brethren) or the Brethren of
the Poor Life, prohibiting them from holding secret or public
assemblies, from electing pastors or teachers over them, and
from practicing their worship; becouse they despised the
sacraments of the (Roman) church, and had departed from the
Roman Cath olic faith; hence they were excommunicated by him
together with all those who in any measure defended or followed
them, and therefore delivered to the inquisitors, to be
examined concerning their faith. See <i>Bzov., A. D. 1317, art.
18.</i></p>

<p>In the meantime, it appears, the above four persons,
refusing to depart from the truth which they had confessed and
accepted, were condemned to death as heretics, and, having
commended their souls to God, were burnt alive.</p>

<p>In regard to this, the papistic writer Vignier says, "In the
same year (A. D. <i>1317)</i> four Minorite friars were burnt
alive on St. Michael's eve, at Marseilles, in France, because
they maintained against the pope the heresy of poverty." Also,
<i>A. Mell., 2d book, fol. 480.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-AS regards their faith, said Pope John XXII, who had
first excommunicated them, made, the following year, A. D.
<i>1318,</i> in a certain decree, among other things, this
statement, "Their third error coincides with the error of the
Waldenses; because they maintained that men ought not to swear
on any account, teaching that it is a sin unto death." <i>Bzov.
Annal., Tom. 14, A. D. 1318, art. 1.</i></p>

<p>At the close of the fourth article are these words"So that
it appears from this, that these Franciscan monks had
apostatized from popery to the doctrine of the Waldenses."
<i>A. Mell., 2d book, fol. 480.</i></p>

<h2>PERSECUTION OF THE BELIEVERS CALLED WAL DENSES, BY POPE JOHN XXII, A. D. <i>1319</i></h2> 

<p>A. D. <i>1319,</i> Pope John XX:II again began to persecute
the Waldenses in France, through his inquisitors, the Jacobine,
or Dominican, monks;-who, having convicted many of them, as
papistic writers say, of their belief (namely, that they were
Waldenses), delivered them to the princes and secular
authorities for punishment. Bzov. <i>Annal. A. D. 1319, Art.
10,</i> from a manuscript in the Vatican library. Also, in the
second book of the <i>Hist. of the Persecutions, fol. 480, cot.
3.</i></p>

<p>Touching the names of these people, as also the manner of
their martyrdom, suffering and death, I have not been able to
ascertain anything, except that, professing the belief of the
Waldenses (as we have already stated), they were therefore
subjected to persecution and suffering.</p>

<p>NOTE.-A. D. 1328. At this time Marsilius de Padua enjoyed
distinction; he wrote against the pope, and also various things
against the Roman church, but his work was condemned as heresy,
and the reading of it strictly prohibited. <i>Merul., fol.</i>
870, <i>Georg. Pac. cap. 11,</i> compared with P. J. <i>Twisck,
Chron., page 685, cot. 1.</i></p>

<h2>PERSECUTION UNTO DEATH AGAINST THE BELIEV ING WALDENSES, IN BOHEMIA AND POLAND; IN WHICH ALSO ONE ECKHARD WAS BURNT FOR THE SAME FAITH, A. D. 1330</h2> 

<p>A. D. 1330, the afore-mentioned persecution against the
Waldensian brethren rose to its highest</p>

</div><div id="333"> 

<p>point in Bohemia and Poland; concerning which the following
account is found in ancient histories, "In that year, A. D.
1330, very many of those who adhered to the doctrine of the
Waldenses, were persecuted unto death and executed, by the
inquisitors, in the kingdoms of Bohemia and Poland." In the
large Book of <i>Christian Martyrs,</i> 2d <i>part, fol.</i>
483.</p>

<h2>TOUCHING SAID PERSECUTION; ALSO ABOUT ECK HARD, ACCORDING TO THE ACCOUNT OF P. J. TWISCK</h2> 

<p>Richard, also called Eckhard, formerly a Dominican monk, was
condemned as a heretic, because he fearlessly preached the
Gospel, and reproved the abuses of the papists. And in the
kingdom of Bohemia and Poland many were put to death for their
religion or faith. <i>Chron., page</i> 685, col. 2, extracted
from <i>Hist. Adri., fol.</i> 64, <i>Herm. Mod. fol.</i> 271,
<i>Henr. Boxh. fol.</i> 27.</p>

<p>NOTE.-John Aston, a well learned man of Oxford, for teaching
that the bread of the holy Supper remained unchanged, was
apprehended as a heretic, A. D. 1330, by the archbishop of
Canterbury, and died in prison. See the authors referred to
above in connection with Eckhard.</p>

<p>Others add here, says Nicholas Vignier, that in said year
(A. D. 1330) a certain jacobine monk, Eckhard by name, whom
others, though erroneously, call Richard, was publicly burnt,
because he steadfastly maintained said opinions of the
Waldenses. <i>Nich. hign., Hist. Eccl., A.</i> D. 1330. Also in
the second book of the <i>Hist. of the Persecutions, fol</i>.
483.</p>

<h2>FURTHER OBSERVATION</h2> 
<p>"I am of the opinion," writes A. Mellinus,"that this Eckhard
is the same German (apostatized) Dominican, of whom Trithemius
makes mention in his Register of Ecclesiastical Writers,
stating that he was a very learned man, and wonderfully
experienced in the Word of God." A. <i>Mell.,</i> from
<i>Trithem. De Script. Eccles., fol.</i> 483.</p>

<p>NOTE.-A. D. 1336, on the 23d of June, John de Pistoia was
publicly burnt at Venice, because he maintained the supposed
heresy of the evangelical poverty. <i>Chron. van den Ondergang,
page</i> 689, col. 2, compared with <i>Merula, fol</i>.
873.</p>

<p>Also A. D. 1340, Conrad Hager, having about this time,
taught for twenty-four years, that the mass was by no means a
sacrifice either for the living or the dead, and, that the
taking of money by the priests, for dying men, was nothing but
theft and sacrilege-in consequence of which many departed from
obedience to the Roman church-was apprehended and secretly
murdered. See in the last mentioned chronicle, <i>page</i> 691,
col. 2, from <i>John Munst., fol.</i> 169, <i>Hist. Andr.,
fol.</i> 64, Pac. <i>cap. 11.</i></p>

<p>Also A. D. 1350, John de Landuno, of Ghent, a highly learned
man, vigorously attacked and cen sured the high power,
supremacy, and false doctrine of the pope; but what happened to
him on this account, our author has omitted to say. <i>Page</i>
703, col. 1, compared with <i>Joh. Munst., fol.</i> 168.</p>

<p>Also A. D. 1360, John de Rupe Scissa publicly spoke against
the pope, saying, "Who is there among you, most holy father, and
most gracious cardinals (for these were the titles by which
they were called) that dare say that Peter or Sylvester
(namely, the upright) ever rode with a train of two or three
hundred horses, as is now common for you . . . to do? but they
were reserved and quiet, and like other pastors and preachers,
made no parade or display, and were also well content with
simple food and clothing." He also said that the popes employed
the goods given, or received by them, in pride, wantonness, and
tyranny. Who would think that the pope received this candid
censure in good part? Compare <i>Joh. Munst. Tract., fol.</i>
53, with the account in the <i>Chron. van den Ondergang,
page</i> 711, col. 2.</p>

<p>In the meantime, we learn that said John de Rupe Scissa,
three years afterwards, was burnt at Avignon, because he
defended the truth. See the last-mentioned chronicle, for the
year 1363, ex <i>Georg. Pae., cap. 11.</i></p>

<h2>PERSECUTION OF THE WALDENSIAN BRETHREN, IN FRANCE, BY POPE URBAN VI, A. D. 1365</h2> 

<p>A. D. 1365, it is recorded that Pope Urban VI charged all
the prelates in France, and the inquisitors of the faith there,
by an express bull, that they should not suffer the heretics
(the Waldenses, who were then called Beghards and Beguines) to
live with impunity, but should exterminate these erring spirits
(thus he calls these pious people) together with their errors,
with the sickle of ecclesiastical discipline. See the papistic
writer <i>Bzovius,</i> for the year 1365, <i>art.</i> 8; also,
the Calvinist <i>Mellinus,</i> 2d <i>book, fol.</i> 488, col.
1.</p>

<p>As to how the Waldenses in those times were called Beghards,
and were persecuted, see <i>A. M., same book, fol. 479,</i>
below in the fourth column.</p>

<p>The confession of faith of these people we have shown in its
proper place, and repetition is not necessary.</p>

<h2>SEVERE PERSECUTION IN FLANDERS, ARTOIS, AND HAINAULT; IN WHICH PERONNE OF AUBETON, A PIOUS WOMAN, IS PUBLICLY BURNT FOR THE FAITH, ABOUT A. D. 1373</h2> 

<p>In the midst of these persecutions, which, in the years 1372
and 1373 were carried on against the Waldenses, who were called
Turilupins, because in Flanders, Artois, and Hainault they had
to live in forests inhabited by wolves (as we have already
stated), it occurred, that among a great number of these
people, who were burnt as heretics, with their writings, books,
and clothes, also a certain woman, called Peronne of Aubeton,
who had accepted that doctrine and faith, and refused to depart
from it,</p>

</div><div id="334"> 

<p>was condemned as a heretic to be publicly burned; which, as
is stated, took place with her, at Paris, A. D. 1373; and thus,
continuing steadfast, she testified that the"Trial of her faith
was more precious than of gold that perisheth, though it be
tried with fire." (I Pet. <i>1:7)..</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-Respecting the offering of this woman, as also, the
accusations, cast by the papists against the Waldenses, called
Turilupins, and how A. Mellinus, preacher of the Calvinists,
replies in their stead, saying that these poor people were
lamentably slandered, and that they were upright Waldenses;
also, that the papists imputed to them whatever they would. See
large Book of <i>Christian Martyrs, 2d part, fol. 497.</i></p>

<h2>THIRTY-SIX PERSONS CALLED WALDENSES, BURNT FOR THE FAITH, AT BINGEN, A. D. <i>1390</i></h2> 

<p>The holy apostle Paul very aptly wrote (II Tim.
<i>3:12),</i> "And all that will live godly in Christ Jesus
shall suffer persecution;" for this appeared, A. D.
<i>1390,</i> in the case of certain pious Christians, who,
being citizens of the city of Mentz, in Germany, had not less
their citizenship in the new and heavenly Jerusalem; having
accepted the faith and doctrine of the Son of God, whereupon
they, as obedient followers of Christ (as may be inferred) had
been baptized according to the confession of the Waldensian
brethren, in order thus to work out, in the footsteps of faith,
their salvation with fear and trembling, according to the rule,
Phil. <i>2:12.</i></p>

<p>But since the rulers of darkness could not bear this light
of truth, it came to pass, in the city of Bingen, that
thirty-six (not of the least) of said children of light, were
apprehended, and, refusing to depart from the truth once
confessed, were condemned to death, namely to be executed with
fire; that is, to be burnt alive; which was also done with
them, and thus they, through fire, offered up a living, holy
sacrifice acceptable unto God.</p>

<p>Concerning the offering of these people, mention is made in
the <i>2d book</i> of the <i>Hist. of the Persecutions, fol.
505, cot. 3, ex Matth. Flacc. Illyr. Catal. Test. Tier.</i>
Said Illyricus also confesses that at that time (A. D.
<i>1390)</i> thirty-six citizens of Mentz were burnt alive at
Bingen, for the faith of the Waldenses.</p>

<p>NOTE.-Someone may ask himself, whether these martyred
persons, who were called citizens of Mentz, and were put to
death at Bingen, were not the same martyrs spoken of in a
certain place in the preceding century; since it is also stated
of them, that they were inhabitants of Mentz, and lost their
lives at Bingen; however, this cannot well be reconciled, since
there is a great discrepancy, in regard to the time, as well as
the number of the persons. For as regards the time, the former
lived one hundred and eighty-seven years earlier than the
latter, as they were dead already in the year <i>1212</i>
(according to the account of <i>Bruschius,</i> in <i>his
History of the German Monasteries;</i> also <i>A. Melt.,</i>
fol. 457, <i>cot. 3);</i> but these last-mentioned ones were
put to death A. D. 1390, as has been shown. Regarding the
number of persons, that of the former is given as thirty-nine,
but that of the latter as thirty-six-a discrepancy of three. As
to their citizenship or residence at Mentz, which is stated of
both, as well as that they were both put to death at Bingen,
are facts that need not cause any one to think, that because
there is an agreement in these respects, that the same people
have been noticed twice by the writers; for it may be, that at
that time those of Mentz had no court of their own, or power to
pronounce sentence of death, and that, hence, they had to
deliver those of their prisoners who were confined for capital
crimes, to those of Bingen, or at least had to bring them to
trial there, as is customary, even at the present day, in many
other cities.</p>

<h2>GREAT PERSECUTION OF THE BELIEVING WAL DENSES ON THE BALTIC SEA; FOUR HUNDRED AND FORTY-THREE OF THEM SEVERELY TORTURED AND PUT TO DEATH, IN THE MARK AND POMERANIA, ABOUT A. D. <i>1390</i></h2> 

<p>About the year <i>1390</i> there began, in the countries on
the Baltic Sea, the very severe persecution of the Waldenses,
of which we made mention of our account of the true faith in
the fourteenth century; which, continuing until into the year
<i>1391,</i> was the cause that, among very many others, four
hundred and forty-three of these people, whose names. are
mentioned, in Pomerania, the Mark, and the adjacent places,
were brought to torture or the rack; who, refusing to
apostatize, freely confessed their faith, and how many long
years they had believed and confessed the truth of their faith,
which was called a heresy. They are stated to have been sober
and frugal people, discreet in their speech, careful to avoid
lying, swearing, etc. <i>Second book</i> of the <i>History of
the Persecutions, fol. 505, cot. 3, 4, ex Catal. Test. Verit.,
lib. 18. Matt. Flacc. 1llyr., lib. 15. Tit. de Wdldensibus.
hignier recutil de histoire de t' Eglise, A. D. 1391.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-It seems that these people were not only persecuted
and tortured for the faith, but also put to death; according to
the account of P. J. Twisck, who says, "Of the believers or
Waldenses more than four hundred and forty were apprehended and
put to death for their religion, in the countries of Saxony and
Pomerania, whose confession showed that they had received that
doctrine from their parents, and that their teachers came to
Bohemia; and the proceedings in their trial shows among other
things that they were sober, and discreet in their speech,
carefully avoiding lying, swearing, and all dishonorable
practices."* P. J. <i>Twisck, Chron., page 743, B.,</i> from
<i>Henr. Boxh., fol. 27.</i></p>

<br /><cite>* These virtues have previously already been
ascribed to them, and are distinctly asserted of them by
various other writers.</cite> 

</div><div id="335"> 

<h2>OF THE PERSECUTION AND SUFFERING OF THE CHRISTIAN BELIEVERS, BY THOSE OF THE ROMAN CHURCH, A. D. 1400</h2> 

<p>That the intelligent and God-fearing J. Tauler called the
prelates of the Roman church blind and leaders of the blind,
and taught his fellow-believers much concerning the persecution
and suffering of the true Christians, we set forth in our
account of Holy Baptism, for the year 1400.</p>

<p>In the meantime some of the sheep of the flock of Christ
were devoured by the Roman wolf; their names,- however, are not
known to us, except one, and even respecting him we have not
been able to obtain sufficient information with regard to his
whole faith, save this much, that in his belief he was opposed
to antichrist, that is, the Pope of Rome; on which account the
cruel death by fire was inflicted upon him, because he would
not apostatize.</p>

<p>Concerning this, the following words, among others, are
found in the <i>Chronijck van den Onder</i>gang, "William
Santraus also opposed the (Roman) antichrist at this time; he
fell into the power and custody of the archbishop of
Canterbury, where he, after a whole year's confinement,
ultimately, though with great steadfastness, ended his life in
the flames." <i>Chron., page</i> 750, col. 1.</p>

<p>NOTE.-A. D. 1400, Franciscus Petrarcha wrote mightily
against the Pope, saying, 1. That the pope was antichrist; 2.
That his court was Babylon and the whore that sitteth upon many
waters (of which we read in John's Revelation), yea, the mother
of all idolatry and whoredom; 3. That Rome was a school of
errors, a temple of heresy, and a nest of treachery. But
speaking thus the truth, the writers say, he could find no
shelter, but was persecuted and driven away by the pope. P.
<i>J. Twisck, Chron., page</i> 750, col. 1, compared with the
twentieth letter of F. Petrarcha, and the poem composed on it;
also, <i>Phil. Marn. Tract, fol.</i> 213.</p><br />

<br />

  <h1>AN ACCOUNT OF THE HOLY BAPTISM IN THE FIFTEENTH CENTURY: SUMMARY OF BAPTISM IN THE FIFTEENTH CENTURY</h1>

<p>[In the beginning of this century, the decree <i>Statutum
ex</i> Oficio, of King Henry IV, of England, published against
the Wickliffites, is mentioned.</p>

<p>Thereupon follows a recital of fifteen articles of said
Wickliffites, which by the inquisition were laid before them,
for recantation; the twelfth article of which declares, that a
child, though it die unbaptized, will be saved; and the
thirteenth article, that neither the pope, nor the prelates,
nor any ordinary, can compel any one to swear; the other
articles are against the superstitions of the Roman church.</p>

<p>Another article charged against these people, namely: that
if they had an infant, they would not have it baptized by the
hands of a priest in church.</p>

<p>William Thorpe is charged with five articles, the last of
which is: That he taught that one ought not to swear.</p>

<p>Thirteen articles, mostly against the Roman superstitions,
are ascribed to John Huss, the thirteenth or last of which
declares that one ought not to swear in any wise.</p>

<p>A notice concerning the followers of John Huss; also, the
articles of holy baptism, as professed by the Taborites.</p>

<p>An account for the year 1455, of many Waldenses in the
bishopric of Reichstadt, who had twelve teachers; also of some
of them who resided in Austria, A. D. 1471, and in the
bishopric of Eichstaedt, A. D. 1475.</p>

<p>The edict of King Matthias against the Moravians, or
Moravian Brethren, who are called <i>Old Waldenses,</i> as also
Baptists (Anabaptists), is shown for the year 1481.</p>

<p>Conclusion to the fifteenth century; in which it is shown by
different reasons, how it comes, that there were so few public
testimonies of the old continuous Waldenses. Here we take our
leave, with the close of this century.]</p>

<p>In this following century we find some persons who are
opposed to oaths, some to war, some to infant baptism, and
other articles in opposition to the Roman church; of which we
will give a brief account.</p>

<p>A. D. 1401.-A certain celebrated writer relates, from
<i>John Fox's English History of the Persecu0ions,</i> that
then, in the month of January, King Henry IV held a parliament
at London, in which a decree or bloody edict was issued.
against the Wickliffites, of whose belief against infant
baptism and oaths we have already written, in speaking of their
leader John Wickliffe; and who at that time, after the English
custom, were called Lollards. This decree or edict was called:
<i>Statutum ex</i> Oficio, or Edict of King Henry IV against
the disciples of Wickliffe, in England. See <i>2d book</i> of
the <i>History of the Persecutions, fol.</i> 514, and fol<i>.
515,</i> from <i>John Fox's Angl., fol.</i> 481.</p>

<h2>TOUCHING THE ARTICLES OF THEIR FAITH, LAID BEFORE THEM BY THE INQUISITION, FOR RECANTATION</h2> 

<p>Continuing, said author relates, from Fox, some articles
drawn up by the inquisition, with or besides the
above-rrientioned edict; containing the principal tenets of the
Wickliffites, which the inquisition placed before them for
renunciation, or abjuration. They read as follows</p>

<p>1."That the mass or the worship which is performed before
the holy cross, and is ordained by the whole church, is
idolatry.</p>

<p>2."That all who worship before the cross, commit idolatry,
and are to be regarded as idolaters.</p>

</div><div id="336"> 

<p>3."That the real flesh and blood of our Lord Jesus Christ
are not in the sacrament of the altar after the priest has
pronounced the words of consecration over them.</p>

<p>4."That the sacrament of the altar is sacramental bread,
without life, and only instituted in remembrance of the
suffering of Christ.</p>

<p>5."That the body of Christ, so-called, which is taken from
the altar, is a figure of Christ's body, as long as we see the
bread and the wine.</p>

<p>6."That the decrees and ecclesiastical ordinances of the
prelates and the clergy, in the province of -Canterbury, in
their last assembly, held, with the consent of the king and the
nobles, in the last parliament, against him who was recently
burnt alive in the city of London, were not powerful enough to
change the purpose of that martyr; because the substance of the
material bread, in the sacrament of the altar, is the same as
it was before, and no change is made, in the nature of the
bread by consecration.</p>

<p>7."That any layman, though he have not studied at college,
has a right to preach the Gospel everywhere, and that he may
teach (provided he has been properly elected thereto by his
church, as has been stated elsewhere) upon his own authority,
without permission from his ordinary bishop.</p>

<p>8."That it is sin to give anything to the Dominicans,
Minorites, Augustinians, and Carmelites.</p>

<p>9."That we ought not to sacrifice at the funerals of the
dead.</p>

<p>10."That auricular confession of sins to the priest is
unnecessary.</p>

<p>11."That every good man, though he be unlearned, is a priest
before God.</p>

<p>12."That a child, though it die unbaptized, will be
saved."</p>

<p>NOTE.-This is putting down infant baptism out and out as of
no value; since the papists were not ashamed to say, that it
were better, that a whole country should sink out of sight,
than that a child should die without baptism; maintaining, that
all unbaptized infants would go to hell, and be eternally
damned.</p>

<p>13."That neither the pope, nor the, prelates; nor any
ordinary, can compel any one to swear, either by any of God's
creatures, or by the Bible, or by the New Testament."</p>

<p>Here it must be observed, that these people thereby denied
all manner of swearing of oaths, not only that which is done by
the creature, but also by the Creator Himself; since even in
England they did not, at that time, swear by the creature; but
in the form of swearing this custom was observed by the
papists, namely, he who was to swear, knelt down, and laid his
hand upon the Bible, or the Testament, and said, "I swear by God
and His holy Gospel, etc., so truly help me God."</p>

<p>But who does not know, that the Gospel or the Word of God is
no creature? And though it be that in swearing the hand was
laid upon the Bible, or upon the Gospel book, in token of the
testimony, he swearing was not done by the material book; as
also in our countries, when in swearing (among those who hold
thus) the hand or the finger is held up, the swearing is not
done by that hand or that finger.</p>

<p>Hence, said people were opposed not only to the manner of
swearing, but to swearing itself, even though they have been
required to swear, not by the creature, but by the Creator
Himself. Concerning this, see their own confession.</p>

<p>14."That the bishop as well as a common man, and a layman as
well as the priest, are of equal authority, as long as they
live aright.</p>

<p>15."That no one is bound to accord any bodily reverence
(that is, by bending the knee and worshiping, as was then
customary in England), to any prelate."</p>

<p>These are briefly the chief articles which, according to the
preceding decree of the king, and the ecclesiastical ordinance,
or much rather inquisition of the archbishop, were laid before
the Christians in England, for recantation. See large Book of
<i>Christian Martyrs, fol</i>. 517, col. 3, 4, from <i>John
Fox, Hist. Angl.</i> 485.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1402.-About this time, Thomas Walsingham, a
bitter papistic historian records some articles of the
above-mentioned people, which, as he states, one Louis of
Clifford, formerly a defender of the faith of these people, had
discovered to the archbishop of Canterbury. The fifth of those
articles reads as follows, "If they (the said people) had a
new-born infant, they would not have it baptized in church, by
the hands of the priest." <i>Thom. Wals., in Hist., Reg. Angl.
and Hypodigmate Neustrie, A. D.</i> 1402.</p>

<p>To this article several words are immediately added; but
these are denied by a certain writer, who quotes said passage,
and says, that the apostate, Louis of Clifford, in order to
please the archbishop, or the bishop himself, surreptitiously
added these words; therefore we will leave it as it is. <i>A.
Mell.,</i> 2d <i>book, fol.</i> 518, col. 1.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1407.-Or about this time, William Thorpe,
formerly an English priest, was apprehended for the faith, who,
as it is stated, had been persecuted greatly already in the
year 1397. He was charged with holding as his faith these five
articles</p>

<p>1."That in the sacrament of the altar, also after the
consecration, that is, after the priest has read the canon, it
still remains real bread.</p>

<p>2."That images are not to be worshiped, nor any honor shown
them.</p>

<p>3."That no pilgrimages ought to be made.</p>

<p>4."That the priests have no right to appropriate the titles
to themselves.</p>

<p>5."That men ought not to swear."</p>

<p>These articles are fully acknowledged to be his articles;
but, in order to give them a somewhat different coloring,
especially with regard to the article respecting nonswearing,
some of the Calvinistic writers, one copying from another, as
it seems,</p>

</div><div id="337"> 

<p>have made some expositions on them, as if William Thorpe
himself replied to them, and signified by the words, "Men ought
not to swear at all," that he did not mean that men ought to
refrain altogether from swearing; but only that one ought not
to swear by the creature, neither trivially, as is especially
maintained by the Calvinistic Mellinus, preacher in St.
Anthony's Polder, in his large book, 2d <i>part, fol.</i> 524,
col. 2.</p>

<p>But other writers, of no less credibility and repute, flatly
contradict this, saying positively that he rejected all manner
of oaths.</p>

<p>Indeed, Mellinus himself, as if forgetful of what he wrote,
indicates it quite clearly when he <i>(page</i> 519, col. 3),
compares this William Thorpe, in faith, to William Swinderby,
who, being burnt for the faith, at London, among others,
confessed this article, which Walter Brute understood to
defend, namely, "That it is not lawful for Christians to swear
on any account, in any case, either by the Creator, or by His
creatures." A. <i>Mell., 2d book, fol.</i> 506, col. 3. This
article is spoken of elsewhere.</p>

<p><i>Further observation.-In Kort herha-el van den Loop der
Werelt,</i> compiled from various chronicles and histories by
F. H. H., A. D. 1611, the following is contained in the account
relative to the swearing of oaths, <i>page</i> 99, "A. D. 1397,
William Troppe, otherwise called W. Thorpe, was much persecuted
in England, on account of his religion. He confessed that the
sacrament of the altar remained true bread after the
consecration, and that men ought not to swear."</p>

<p><i>Touching the same matter.-P. J.</i> Twisck
writes, "William Thorpe, a priest in England, disputed earnestly
with the priests of antichrist. He taught against images,
<i>the oath,</i> the sacrament of the altar, and like abuses."
<i>Chron., p.</i> 758, col. 2.</p>

<p>Conclusion.-Hence, it appears from the preceding
testimonies, that this man sincerely, plainly, and
undisguisedly taught against oaths of whatsoever kind,
according to the words of the Lord. Matt. 5:34, and James
5:12;* to which more could be adduced; but we think enough has
been said in the matter; and, hence, we will dismiss it.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1412-The loss to the Roman, and the upbuilding
of the true Christian, church, were at this time facts existing
in no small degree in the French country, around Paris, but
particularly in that city itself; since various distinguished
persons, and in point of learning not the least, did not
hesitate to attack the Italian Babylon, that is, Rome, and her
perverted worship; however, not with external but with
spiritual and evangelical weapons. Notwithstanding the hatred
of the papal clergy, they dared openly reprove the errors and
abuses of the Roman church. But whether they expressly
mentioned, or otherwise included, the article of infant baptism
among the number, is not clearly stated by the ancients; hence
we must content our-</p>

<br /><cite>*"But I say unto you, Swear not at all." Matt.
5:34."But above all things, my brethren, swear not." James
5:12. selves with what they have written of it in a general
way.</cite> 

<p>NOTE.-John of Ferrara. . . in Italy, said about this time,
among many other articles, that the pope, by sheer violence,
and without right, had seized countries and cities; that the
clergy carried their conscience in their caps, and that they
were more avaricious and worse than the laity; that the
churches and monasteries of the clergy were nets with which to
draw to themselves the property of the laity, etc. P. J.
<i>Twisck, Chron. for the year</i> 1412, p. 770, col. 2.</p>

<p>Concerning this there is the following account, "At this time
(A. D. <i>1412),</i> also at Paris, various excellent, learned
men rose against popery, pointing out the errors and abuses of
the Roman church; by which they gained small thanks from the
clergy." <i>Catal. Test., fol.</i> 857, <i>Meru., fol.</i> 910,
compared with the <i>Chronijck van den Ondergang,</i> p. 771,
col. 1.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1415.-At this time John Huss lived, who, having
examined and studied the books and writings of John Wickliffe
(of whom we said in the preceding century, that he opposed
infant baptism, and the swearing of oaths), retained and
accepted therefrom, among other articles, that it does not
become a Christian to swear.</p>

<p>How and in what manner the writings of John Wickliffe fell
into the hands of John Huss, and how .eagerly he exercised
himself therein, is described by A. <i>Mellinus, 2d book,
p.</i> 495, col. 1; but that he ever, by this means or
otherwise, learned the article of nonswearing, Mellinus, as
well as other Calvinists, would deny, saying;"That which is
imputed to him, regarding his unwillingness to swear, has
respect only to the abjuration of his faith, or religion, but
not to the oath itself."</p>

<p>Besides that I have never found such an explanation in any
credible writer of that time, though I have earnestly sought to
investigate it; the circumstances of the matter itself,
however, indicate that the article of nonswearing was one of
the articles of his faith.</p>

<h2>TOUCHING THE ARTICLES OF FAITH WHICH JOHN HUSS HAD DERIVED FROM THE WRITINGS OF JOHN WICKLIFFE</h2> 

<p>Sebastian Franck writes as follows, "John Huss, a disciple
and fellow believer of this Wickliffe, received the Wickliffite
doctrine from Jerome of Prague, who carried it with him from
England to Bohemia as a sacred treasure.</p>

<p>Continuing, he relates the articles which John Huss had
learned and adopted from Wickliffe's writings.</p>

<p>1."That the Roman church has no right to divide the
sacrament, and has wrongfully deprived the laity of one
form.</p>

<p>2."That the Roman bishop is just like other (ordinary)
bishops.</p>

</div><div id="338"> 

<p>3."That under all circumstances there is no purgatory.</p>

<p>4."To pray for the dead is vain and unavailing, and is
invented by the avarice of the priests.</p>

<p>5."Images of God and the saints are not to be tolerated, and
should be abolished.</p>

<p>6."The wicked devils have invented the unspiritual mendicant
orders.</p>

<p>7."The priests ought to be poor, and live only from
alms.</p>

<p>8."Outward, auricular confession is altogether false and
man's invention. It is sufficient to confess one's sins in the
closet to God.</p>

<p>9."The ceremonies and usages of the (Roman) church are vain
things.</p>

<p>10."Touching several things concerning the sacrament,
etc.</p>

<p>11."The time is uselessly consumed by the seven hours.*</p>

<p>12."There is no merit in the fasts instituted by the church,
and in many other errors.</p>

<p>13."Men shall not swear in any wise. Hence he said to those
who urged him vehemently to swear an oath: 'I am afraid every
way; if I swear, eternal death is my portion; but if I swear
not, I cannot escape your hands; but it is better that I fall
into your hands without sin than to sin in the sight of
God."'</p>

<p>Here we certainly clearly see that the doctrine of not
swearing in any wise, was an article of his faith; and if it
was the case that he was requested to abjure his faith or
religion, he refused to abjure it, not only because he would
not forsake his faith or religion, but also because he held
that one ought not to swear at all, as the 13th article
declares, "Men shall not swear in any wise," that is, not at
all. <i>Seb.</i> Fr. Chron., 3d part, <i>f al.</i> 105. Tract.
van den Loop Werelt, <i>fol. 100. Also P. J. Twisck, Chron.,
page</i> 764. A.</p>

<h2>NOTICE CONCERNING THE FOLLOWERS OF JOHN HUSS, WHO, ACCORDING TO THE ACCOUNTS OF JACOB MEHRNING, WERE VERY DIFFER ENT FROM THEIR LEADER</h2> 

<p>When in the fifteenth century, John Huss began to teach in
Bohemia, and gained a great number of adherents, many Waldenses
united with them; who rejoiced, and hoped that thereby the
light of the Gospel, which, up to this time, had for so long a
period been so abominably quenched and persecuted by the
papists, would begin to shine more clearly, burn more
vigorously, and proceed the more unobstructedly. But when,
after the death of John Huss and Jerome of Prague, who had both
been burnt by the papists, at Constance, on the Lake of
Constance, contrary to the safe conduct granted by the Emperor,
the Hussites in Bohemia, commenced an atrocious and bloody war
against Emperor Sigismund and the German electors, and</p>

<br /><cite>* Prayers which the priests of the Roman
Catholic church have to read from the breviary at stated
seasons of the year.-Trans.</cite> 

<p>other princes, which they, after
carrying it on for a long time, finally adjusted, and when said
Hussites, as totally estranged from their teacher and leader,
John Huss, united with the papists in many doctrinal points and
church ceremonies, many of the Waldenses, who had at first
joined the Hussites, found themselves shamefully deceived in
their hope, and bethought themselves better, that is, according
to the doctrine of the holy Gospel, to have nothing at all to
do with such a bloody war. Again, they also began to protest
against it. They also turned away from the Hussites, in the
points of doctrine and church usages, and established a
separate church, being afterwards called Taborites,
Grubenheimer* dwellers in caves, etc.</p>

<p>This greatly grieved the so-called Hussites, and they,
therefore, through the instigation of M. John Rockenzahns and
others, began to dreadfully hate and persecute, not only the
old faithful Waldenses, who had never been united with them,
but also these newer ones, who separated from them. Jac.
Mehrn., Bdpt. Hist., 2d part, from Lydius, in the Hist. ofthe
Waldensibus.</p>

<h2>FURTHER OBSERVATION CONCERNING THE MIS DEEDS OF THE FOLLOWERS OF JOHN HUSS</h2> 

<p>From the above, we certainly clearly see that the orthodox
Waldenses had existence also in the fifteenth century; some of
whom, having, from a good intention, united with the Hussites,
who followed their master John Huss, neither meekly nor
faithfully, were shamefully deceived by them, seeing said
Hussites commenced to take up arms and wage severe wars against
their enemies, something to which the Waldenses were certainly
not accustomed, as is shown by their own confession. Having
therefore separated from the Hussites, they, as well as their
brethren, the old Waldenses, with them, were severely
persecuted by them; thus indicating that the church of Christ
on earth is not a kingdom of triumph and victory, but a school
of suffering and death for the name of Christ.</p>

<h2>THAT THE WALDENSES WHO HAD BEEN UNITED WITH THEM, CALLED TABORITES, WERE NOT RECEIVED BY THEIR OLD BRETHREN, AND WHY</h2> 

<p>Now when these Waldenses, called Taborites who, having been
united with the Hussites, had separated from them on account of
war and other errors, desired to reunite with the old
Waldenses, who had been their brethren, these, from sorrow of
mind, refused them, that the unchristian conduct of the
Hussites might not be laid to their charge, seeing these
seceders, as they thought, had been so intimate with the
Hussites.</p>

<p>See here, beloved reader, how pure, upright and unfeigned
was the conduct of these old Waldenses in this respect; how
steadfastly and blamelessly</p>

<br /><cite>* These"Grubenheimer" are to be distinguished
from others who also bore this name.</cite> 

</div><div id="339"> 

<p>they practiced their confession, desiring to bear not even
the appearance of having fellowship with those who waged war
and fought against their enemies.</p>

<h2>THAT THEY NEVERTHELESS PROFESSED A GOOD CONFESSION</h2> 

<p>Nevertheless, these Taborites, because of their aversion to
war and the superstitions, had separated from the Hussites, and
also truly held in those times, as cannot be inferred
otherwise, the true confession of the Waldenses, although, as
it is thought, some endeavored to force in infant baptism
among. them; however, their confession in regard to this
article, delivered in the year 1431, at Prague, in Bohemia, to
M. John Rockenzahn, makes no mention at all of it, yea, they
employ such expressions therein as is utterly impossible to
apply to infant baptism.</p>

<p>In J. <i>Mehrning's History of Baptism, p.</i> 611, we read
these words, "I have before me the confession of the Taborites,
drawn up A. D. 1431, which in all respects agrees with our
doctrine, and which I intend to have printed at the proper,
time."</p>

<p>Concerning the difference between the Hussites proper and
Taborites, who were united with them, D. Balthazar Lydius gives
this explanation, "The followers of John Huss were divided into
two sects, the one called <i>Praguers,</i> the other
<i>Taborites;</i> of whom the Taborites were the stricter.
Tract entitled: <i>'Where the church was before the year</i>
1160; <i>or before the time of the Waldenses;' printed in the
year</i> 1624, cent;. 25."</p>

<p>Their confession is as follows, "First, concerning the
sacrament of baptism,-which is the first sacrament by which God
imparts, especially the first sacramental grace, if we are
spiritually regenerated; because it is a sign of the spiritual
regeneration proceeding from God,-we hold, according to the
tenor of the holy Scriptures, and sincerely confess from the
heart, that the sacrament of baptism is the ablution of man,
performed by another with water, who pronounces the words
prescribed by Christ, which effectually signify the ablution of
the soul from sin, which is expressly founded in the Gospel;
for Christ, with words as well as by deed, taught that those
who believe in Him should be thus baptized. He taught this with
words when He said to the apostles,: 'Go ye therefore and teach
all nations, baptizing them in the name of the Father, and of
the Son, and of the Holy Ghost.' Matthew 23:19. He taught it
.by deed when He Himself was baptized by John, in Jordan. Matt.
3. Bapt. <i>Hist.,</i> second part, pp. 743, 744, from B.
<i>Lyd. Wald., pp. 10, 11.</i></p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1431.-At this time, also Scotland, though
otherwise very superstitious, experienced no inconsiderable
reformation in the true worship of God, which was effected by
various persons zealous for the honor of God and the welfare of
His church. So that some resolved and endeavored to reform not
only the article of baptism, which was shamefully, and not less
to the detriment of many innocent. souls, abused by the Roman
church, but also various other . articles which, from sheer
superstition, were maintained by them according to human
opinion. .They were determined to retain the good, and abolish
the evil.</p>

<p>Among those who at this time undertook the reformation of
the same, one Paul Craus is especially mentioned, who also
opposed auricular confession, the invocation of the saints, the
idolatrous sacrament, etc. For this he was condemned as a
heretic; but how he finally ended will be shown at the .right
time and place. Compare the account in the fifteenth book
<i>van den Ondergang, p.</i> 796, col. 1, with <i>Tine. Cal.,
fol.</i> 368, <i>Georg. Pac. c. 11. Herm. Mod., fol.</i>
274.</p>

<p>NOTE.-Whether this Paul Craus was fully enlightened in all
other articles pertaining to the worship of God, we cannot
definitely prove; even as, on the other hand, we have found
nothing which might tend to derogate his belief; though we have
sought in good faith for that which would be derogatory to him;
as well as for that which would make him acceptable; hence we
have deemed it well to accord also to him a place among the
good confessors of the evangelical truth.</p>

<p>A. D. 1455.-About this time there were many Waldenses
(erroneously called Wandois) in Germany, in the bishopric of
Reichstadt, of whose orthodox confession an account was given
for the year 1170. They, had among them twelve preachers, or
teachers, of their religion, who, each in his district, went
out secretly, on account of the severe persecution, to preach.
P. J. 7xuaisck, <i>Chron., p.</i> 829, col. 2, from <i>Henr.
Boxh., fol.</i> 27.</p>

<p>NOTE. A. <i>D.</i> 1460.-At this time Roderic Simotensus
severely reproved the human institutions and abuses of the
papists, such as excommunication, fasts, feasts, auricular
confession, and the mass, as appears from his book, entitled
<i>The Mirror</i> of <i>Hunan Life. Chron., van den Ondergang,
p. 835, col. 1.</i></p>

<p>Again, same year as above; Nicholas Siculus said at this
time, that a believing person who rightly adduces the holy
Scriptures should be believed more than the pope, and a whole
council that rejects the holy Scripture. He further said, that
a council may, err;.aJso, that some of the popes lived as
though they did not believe that there would be a resurrection
of the flesh after this life. See the afore-mentioned
chronicle, in the place indicated, taken from <i>Joh. Munst.,
fol. 190.</i></p>

<p>Also, same year, Dionys. Rickel, a learned man, said that in
the primitive church the Sacrament (or Supper) was given to
believers under both forms, that is, with bread and wine; to
which the Roman church acted contrary at this time. Compare the
author first indicated with <i>Joh. Fabr., fol. 164.</i></p>

<p>A. D. 1465.-Nicholas Casanus now vehemently attacked the
pope with the Word of God; he called him antichrist, rejected
human institutions, etc. In</p>

</div><div id="340"> 

<p>his book on the Peace of the Faith, compared with <i>P. J.
Tzedsck, Chron. page</i> 841, col. 1.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1467.-Anthony Rosellus, an Italian doctor,
writes that the pope is not to be regarded as the lord of the
world; that he neither can nor ought to command the Emperor;
that he neither may nor ought to wield the secular sword. P.
<i>J. Tzedsck, Chron. page</i> 845, <i>from Joh. Munst.,
fol.</i> 295.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1470.-At this time a book was issued, entitled
<i>Spiegel des heiligen kercken-Regements,</i> without the name
of the author, in which particularly, the mendicant monks and
the pope were censured. The author adduces Anthony the Hermit,
and says that the monks have departed from the Word of God,
and, from hypocrisy, have adopted all sorts of human
institutions. <i>Catal. Test. herit., fol.</i> 884, compared
with P. 1. <i>Twisck, page</i> 847, col. 2.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1471.-At this time, says a celebrated author,
there were not very many Waldenses in Bohemia, on account of
the violent persecution; but in Austria there were still some,
who had also been dispersed for the most part, through the
cruelty of the torments, and the terror of persecution.</p>

<p>But how they were afterwards united, as it is alleged, by
one Peter Textor, or (as Mellinus explains), Peter the Weaver,
in the city of Landskron, in Bohemia, with the Moravian and
Bohemian brethren; so that they subsequently held no separate
church meetings, save only with the Bohemian and Moravian
brethren, is described by Mellinus, in the second book of the
<i>Persecutions, fol.</i> 592, col. 4, and fol<i>.</i> 593,
col. 1.</p>

<p>NOTE.-The Bohemian brethren must here not be understood to
mean the Hussites, to whom the name of Bohemian brethren was
also given; unless it be said that the Waldenses had separated
from them.</p>

<p>But that notwithstanding this opinion of Mellinus, many
Waldenses still remained scattered and persecuted in Germany
and France, as well as elsewhere, who, unchanged in faith and
worship, endeavored steadfastly to serve their Saviour
according to the rule of Christ and His holy apostles, appears
from various other authors. Yea, Mellinus, as though he had
forgotten himself, writes that A. D. 1475, in the bishopric of
Eichstaedt, in Germany, a great number of Christians were
discovered and apprehended, who professed the doctrine of the
Waldenses. <i>Second book, fol.</i> 590, col. 4. Yea, that even
sixty-nine years afterwards, namely A. D. 1544, the Waldenses
of Merindol and Cabriere delivered a confession of faith, at
Paris in the parliament, to the King of France, in defence of
their innocence. Same book, fol. 446, col. 1, 2, etc.</p>

<p>Moreover, that said confession does not militate against,
but well agrees with, that of the Anabaptists, may be found in
the same place.</p>

<p>NOTE. A. D. 1472.-J. Guitode, . . . now greatly reproved the
papal haughtiness and idolatry; the running of pilgrims after
images, and miracles invented by avarice. He undisguisedly said
that they were vice:egents, not of Christ, but of antichrist;
yea, that they were possessed with the presumptuousness and
pride of Lucifer. <i>Chron. van den Ondergang, page</i> 852,
<i>from. Catal. Test. Verit.,</i> 883.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1481.-It is stated that in this year King
Matthias, on the solicitation of some evil-disposed persons,
issued a decree against the Moravians or Moravian brethren.
Large Book of <i>Christian Martyrs, fol.</i> 597, col. 2,
<i>from Joach Camer. Narr. Hist. Boh., page</i> 118.</p>

<p>These Moravian brethren are called Old Waldenses by Jacob
Mehrning, who also shows that various excellent and learned men
reckoned among the Anabaptists proceeded from them. His words
are, "From among these Bohemian and Moravian Old Waldenses
afterwards several excellent men proceeded; as, among others,
Hans Koch and Leonhard Meister, who were both put to death at
Augsburg, A. D. 1527. Also, the very learned Michael Sattler,
who ministered to his church, A. D. 1527, at Horb, in Germany.
Also, Leonhard Keyser, who, in the year 1529, was martyred in
Bavaria; to whom, while in prison, Dr. Luther addressed letters
of consolation, although he (Keyser) did not agree with Luther
in regard to infant baptism. <i>Bapt. Hist., Zd part, page</i>
748.</p>

<h2>CONCLUSION TO THE FIFTEENTH CENTURY A,. D. 1500</h2> 

<p>Thus it appears clearly, that the old true Waldenses
existed, and practiced their worship not only throughout the
fifteen century, but also long afterwards, as will be seen from
the sequel of our account. But that the number of the witnesses
which we have produced from the Waldenses, has not been very
great in this century, of this not we, but the enemies of truth
have been the cause, who have put the writings of these people
out of the way.</p>

<p>This the writer of the History of Baptism explains, when he
says, cent;. 749 to p. 750:</p>

<p>1."That there are so few public testimonies extant, of the
faithful old Waldenses, in this fifteenth century, that is,
between the years 1400 and 1500 is the fault of their enemies
and opponents, who, by strategy and violence, as much as they
alone could, suppressed their writings and confessions.</p>

<p>2."Besides the Waldenses were always and everywhere most
cruelly persecuted by their opponents, without a hearing; which
prevented them from bringing anything to good light.</p>

<p>3."Printing came into use only in the fifteenth century, and
in its beginning did not become common as it now is, for a long
time; hence the Waldenses and their successors could not avail
themselves of it.</p>

<p>4."Besides, it was not so indispensably necessary; since
their confessions regarding the true use, and abuse, of baptism
sufficiently came to</p>

</div><div id="341"> 

<p>light through their martyrs, and through the inquisitions
and examinations; which their enemies and murderers themselves
had to copy in their chronicles and chronologies, much of which
has already been adduced. From Catal. Test. herit. Flacc.</p>

<p>5."Moreover, God, in the midst of His enemies, miraculously
preserved, at all times, in the text of the New Testament, the
right and true baptismal ordinance of Jesus Christ (that is,
baptism upon faith), and also, in many, the Christian baptism
of adults; to which they obediently submitted, and suffered
with patience all that befell them on this account.</p>

<p>6."Finally, the ancient writers throughout all the centuries
from the time of Christ until now, yea, the teachers of the
Roman church themselves, had to bear witness to the truth, in
their books, and to confess, by whom infant baptism and all
other abuses of baptism have been brought in and arbitrarily
forced upon the church; and by whom this has everywhere been
opposed; as has hitherto been shown. Hence it is neither
profitable nor necessary, to write much about it; as it serves
to no purpose. Truth is praised also through the enemy.</p>

<p>This will suffice concerning the testimony of those who
understood, taught, and practiced baptism and other articles,
in the fifteenth century, according to the rule of the
Anabaptists of the present day. Hence we will leave this
matter, and see what persons in those times steadfastly
testified with their blood and death to this confession.</p>

 
<h1>AN ACCOUNT OF THOSE WHO SUFFERED IN THE FIFTEENTH CENTURY: SUMMARY OF THE MARTYRS IN THE FIFTEENTH CENTURY</h1>

<p>[The beginning treats of the great distress in these times;
some definite information given, about some countries where the
misery was the greatest, as concerning England, France,
Germany, Flanders, etc.</p>

<p>The first year of this century begins with a bloody decree
published in England against the confessors of the holy Gospel;
in consequence of which much innocent blood is shed.</p>

<p>William S'winderby is put to death by fire, for the faith,
in the city of London, A. D. 1401; some account is given
respecting his belief and death, according to different
writers.</p>

<p>In a note, for the year 1405, mention is made of the belief
of John Wenschelberg, against a certain blood-red papistic host
and the false miracles of the Romanists.</p>

<p>William Thorpe, confessing his belief against the oath and
other articles of the Roman church, is put to death by violence
and fire, at Saltevoden, A. D. 1407. en years after, A. D.
1417, Catharine of Thou, Lorraine, coming to Montpellier, in
France, and there offers up her life, by fire, to God, for the
faith.</p>

<p>A great number of Christians called Waldenses, also
willingly, for the faith, give their bodies to be burned, in
the Flemish countries, A. D. 1421. In a note, by way of
parenthesis, the flood of Dort is introduced, together with the
destruction of seventy-two villages which were inundated in
that year; also, concerning Henry Gruenfelder, Peter Torea,
Jerome Savonarola, who, in the years 1423, 1425 and 1427,
opposed the errors of the pope and the Roman church.</p>

<p>William White, father Abraham of Cholchester, and John
Waddon, miserably put to death by fire, for their true faith,
at Norwich in England, A. D. 1428.</p>

<p>Then follows Margaret Backster, who, on account of her
orthodox belief against images, the Sacrament, the oath, etc.,
is put to death in prison, or otherwise, A. D. 1430.</p>

<p>In a note, for the years 1431, 1436, 1439, and 1450, it is
stated how Paul Crau, Thomas Rhedonensis, Augustine de Roma,
Alanus Chartetius, and others, opposed the Roman church with
spiritual weapons; and what happened to them on this
account.</p>

<p>Very many Christians called Waldenses, are put to death for
the faith, at Eichstaedt, in Germany, A. D. 1455. Then follows
a note concerning Laurence de Valla, John de Wesalia, George
Morgenstern, Stephen Brulifer, etc., who, in the years 1465,
1470, and 1471 maintained their belief in opposition to the
Roman Babylon; and what they had to suffer on this account.</p>

<p>The last Waldensian martyr in this century is Stephen, an
elder of their church, who loses his life for the faith, by
red-hot coals, at Vienna, in Austria.</p>

<p>A severe inquisition, instituted by the Spaniards against
the believers and all who opposed the Roman church, is
circumstantially shown, for the year 1492.</p>

<p>In a note, for the years 1494, 1498, and 1499, mention is
made of John Bougton, Jerome Savonarola, Paul Scriptor, etc.,
who declared against the Roman church; and what happened to
them an this account. With this we conclude our account of the
martyrs in the fifteenth century.]</p>

<p>The times in this century are distressing. The places of the
world, though very large, are nevertheless very small and
narrow for the pious. The holy confessors of Jesus, who seek to
live according to the Gospel, find no rest anywhere. It seems
that the earth, which ought properly to be a dwelling place for
the good, is possessed only by the rocked.</p>

<p>Is it not a matter of astonishment, and not less</p>

</div><div id="342"> 

<p>to be lamented: England,* which of old has been supposed to
have derived her name from the good angels of heaven, is now
found to be a pool of infernal and wicked spirits; for the
saints of God are cruelly put to death there; to which
Smithfield, at London, the murderous prison at Saltwoden, and
the place of execution at Norwich, can bear testimony.</p>

<p>France, which used to be called a free and frank country,
yea, a kingdom of liberties, is now so devoid of freedom for
the consciences of the true believers, that scarce a corner is
found there, where they may confess their faith or practice
their worship. At Montpellier they are hurried to the place of
execution, and in other places they are likewise miserably put
to death.</p>

<p>Germany is occupied by non-Germans, that is, by ignorant and
unreasonable men, who do not f ear to resist the will of God,
and to imbrue their hands in the blood of God's saints. At
Eichstaedt they are murdered; at Vienna, in Austria, they are
burnt.</p>

<p>Flanders, this most beautiful and pleasant country, upon
which, from of old, the gracious blessing of the Lord descended
as a refreshing shower and morning dew, is utterly ungrateful
to the Lord, and acknowledges none of the benefits enjoyed; but
there God is touched in the apple of His eye. O awful matterl
the pious witnesses of God are placed alive into the fiery
flames.</p>

<p>It is time that we begin to give some account of this
matter, lest some should doubt what we have said.</p>

<h2>OF A BLOODY DECREE, PUBLISHED IN ENGLAND AGAINST THE CONFESSORS OF THE HOLY GOS PEL; IN CONSEQUENCE OF WHICH MUCH BLOOD WAS SHED AMONG THEM, A. D. 1401</h2> 

<p>Tyrants generally find a reason for their tyranny, in the
orders which they have received from their superiors in
authority; this is for them a wide cloak, which can cover much
evil. In the meantime they vent their anger, yea, rejoice in
their wickedness, while the unoffending and innocent have to
suffer.</p>

<p>Now, if this would obtain only with the worldly, what would
it matter, knowing that they are worldlyminded; but even the
so-called ecclesiastics or clergy, who are credited with
everything good, are guilty in this matter.</p>

<p>All this is briefly shown, in the beginning of the fifteenth
book of the <i>Chronijk van den Ondergang der Tyrannen,</i>
with these words, "In the year 1401 a decree was issued in
England, against the confessors of the Gospel, or those who
gave them assistance or showed them favor; in consequence of
which much innocent blood was shed by the ecclesiastical
prelates, priests, and monks of anti-</p>

<br /><cite>*"Anglia," England; others, however, are of the
opinion, that it comet from 'Ango,' that is, to strangle,
torment, distress, oppress, etc.; or from Anguatia," hat is, a
narrow and straitened place. Christ." See above-mentioned
chronicle, <i>page 753,</i> Col. 1, from <i>Hist. Adrian., fol.
85, Henr. Boxh., fol. 27.</i></cite> 

<h2>WILLIAM SWINDERBY, BURNT FOR THE FAITH, AT LONDON, IN ENGLAND, A. D. 1401</h2> 

<p>In the year <i>1389</i> it occurred as old chronicles show,
that one William Swinderby, a priest of the bishopric of
Lincoln, was accused of certain opinions, and brought before
the bishop of Lincoln, who examined him concerning certain
articles, in the church at Lincoln, according to the manner or
order of the papal laws, agreeing with their usual
ceremonies.</p>

<p>His accusers were the monks, friar Roger Frisby, a
Franciscan; friar John Hincely, an Augustmian, and Thomas
Blaxton, a Dominican; whom he refuted in all their accusations,
showing that the eleven articles which they brought against
him, and which they alleged to have extracted from his sermons,
were altogether false, or, at least, mixed with much
untruth.</p>

<p>But said monks, not content with his disavowal and
explanation, opposed him so vehemently with their testimonies,
that they declared to have convicted him of the articles with
which they had charged him. They brought with them into the
city dry fagots, according to the English custom, to burn him,
and would not release him until he had promised, or, from fear
of death, firmly assured them, that he would not hold, teach,
or preach said articles any more, neither secretly nor openly,
on pain of incurring like punishment. They moreover drew up in
writing a form, which he was to repeat from memory, by way of
recantation: to which they compelled him by severe threats.
<i>John Fox, Mart. Angl., ex Registro Hereford.</i></p>

<p>But afterwards the aforesaid William Swinderby did
nevertheless not cease preaching his belief, so that he was
apprehended, by order of King Richard II, in the fifteenth year
of his reign, coinciding with the year <i>1392,</i> and closely
confined, by order of John, Bishop of Hereford, who had
received this charge from the king.</p>

<p>In the meantime he was examined in the faith, and it was
found that he taught several articles which militated against
the Roman church; but which or what kind of articles these
were, is not clearly expressed by the writers; yet it can be
inferred from the confession of one Walter Brute, who, in the
matter of faith, is compared to William Swinderby, by Abraham
Mellinus and others; yea, they declare that Walter Brute was a
champion and defender of William Swinderby's articles, who,
among others, maintained this article, "That it is not lawful
for Christians to swear on any account, in any case, either by
the Creator, or by His creatures."</p>

<p>Concerning holy baptism, he made this confession, "He
(Christ) was buried that we might all, by baptism, be buried
with Him into His death;</p>

</div><div id="343"> 

<p>and that, having died unto sin (notice, this is not the work
of children), we should live unto righteousness."</p>

<p>As to his views in regard to all other articles, we have
found them very scriptural, salutary and good. In regard to
this, see <i>John Fox Angl., page</i> 440.</p>

<p>It is certainly true, that William Swinderby's articles of
faith thus shone forth through their radiance of divine truth,
that the children of darkness ( the Romanists ) could not bear
them, so that they finally, after a long and severe
confinement, finished his trial, pronouncing sentence of death
upon him, namely; that he should be executed with fire, that
is, burnt alive, as a heretic, in Smithfield, London. This it
is stated, was done with him, twelve years after his first
imprisonment.</p>

<h2>FURTHER OBSERVATION REGARDING HIS DEATH</h2> 

<p>Concerning the death of this pious man, a certain author
gives the following account from John Fox, "Having received this
commission and full power from the king, against William
Swinderby, the bishop doubtless did his very best to procure
his arrest without delay; however, he did not immediately
proceed with the execution of death against him, but kept him
in prison for a long time. At last A. D. 1401, he was burnt
alive in Smithfield, at London." Second book of the <i>Hist. of
the Persecutions, fol.</i> 505, cot. 2, from <i>John Fox, Hist.
Angl., page</i> 438, also, <i>page</i> 436.</p>

<p>Again, <i>A. Mellinus, page</i> 515, cot. 4, "Baleus also
accords with this, saying that William Swinderby, after his
recantation, was strengthened in the confession of the divine
truth, and was finally, A. D. 1401, burnt alive, in the sight
of a great number of people, in Smithfield, at London." <i>Bal.
Cent. 6, Script. Britt., in Append. ad Jo. 1, Horesb., page</i>
493.</p>

<p>NOTE. A. D. 1405, John Wenschelberg now wrote against the
superstition in popery, and also against the deception
practiced by the priests. Among other things he related of a
Bohemian priest, who had colored the host of the Sacrament (of
the altar) with his own blood, and had persuaded the people,
that the blood had of its own accord mingled with the
bread."These are," he said,"the lying signs and false miracles
of antichrist." But what happened to him on this account, from
the papists, we have not found in the old writers. Compare
<i>Joh. Munst., fol.</i> 181, with <i>Chron. van den Ondergang,
page</i> 758, cot. 1.</p>

<h2>WILLIAM THORPE PUT TO DEATH AND BURNT FOR THE FAITH, AT SALTWODEN, IN ENGLAND, A. D. 1407</h2> 

<p>Now, when the abomination of desolation, through the
papists, began to exalt itself more and more over the true
faith, it occurred, about A. D. 1397, that a God-fearing, pious
man, named William Thorpe, formerly a priest, was sorely perse
cuted for the truth of the Gospel, particularly for his belief
against the sacrament of the altar, image worship, pilgrimages,
the power of the priests, the swearing of oaths, etc.</p>

<p>Of these articles of his accusation, especially of his.
belief against the swearing of oaths, and what is alleged
against it by opponents, we have already given an explanation
in the presentation of his faith.</p>

<p>However, notwithstanding that he was already imprisoned,
upon the intercession of some welldisposed persons, and through
the fact that the archbishop of Canterbury, who had apprehended
him, had fallen into disfavor with the king, he was released
after the first persecution. But since this pious witness of
God did not cease to preach against the Roman church,
particularly against the swearing of oaths, (as divers old
writers note), he was eventually, about A. D. 1407, apprehended
at Salopia, brought from there to Canterbury, and ultimately
imprisoned in the castle of Saltwoden; where the archbishop and
the prelates beset him very hard, in order to draw him from his
faith.</p>

<p>In the meantime, a number of disorderly persons having
crowded into the prison, some demanded that he should
immediately be burnt; others, that he should forthwith be
thrown into the sea., which was nearby, and drowned. In this
dreadful uproar, a priest from their midst fell upon his knees
before the archbishop, entreating him, that he might do his
utmost for this William Thorpe, to convert him, by the reading
of his matins or morning prayers, which he should perform for
him, saying, "I venture to promise that after three days he will
change so remarkably, that he will not refuse to do anything
for the archbishop."</p>

<p>But the archbishop, filled with anger, raged on with
undiminished fury, threatening the martyr, that he would see to
it, that he should get his deserts. Thereupon, this pious
witness of Jesus, as he refused to apostatize, was most cruelly
maltreated in the prison, in the castle of Saltwoden. Some hold
that he was burnt soon after that severe examination, in the
month of August of said year <i>1407.</i> See <i>hignier, A. D.
1407,</i> from Guil. <i>Tindal;</i> but Baleus is of the former
opinion. <i>Cent. 7, Script. Britt., cap. 42, in</i> Guil.
<i>Thorp., page 538.</i></p>

<p>NOTE. <i>A. D. 1410.</i> At this time a tradesman was
condemned as a heretic by the (Roman) bishops, and delivered to
the secular judge; because he believed and said that the bread
in the Lord's Supper was given for a memorial; thus denying
transubstantiation, or the essential change of the bread into
the body of Christ. For this he had to suffer the slow and
dreadful death by fire. Compare <i>Fasc. Temp., fol. 118. Hist.
of the Mart. Adyi., fol. 52,</i> with P. J. <i>Twisck's Chron.,
page 763.</i></p>

<p>That all this happened to him, because he, besides opposing
the Roman superstitions, also held, that men may not swear at
all, has already been stated, and is confirmed by <i>F. H. H.,
van den Loop</i></p>

</div><div id="344"> 

<p><i>der Werelt, page 99.</i> Also, P. I. <i>Twisek,
Chron.,</i> page 758.</p>

<h2>CATHARINE OF THOU, IN LORRAINE, BURNT FOR THE FAITH, AT MONTPELLIER, IN FRANCE, A. D. 1417</h2> 

<p>On the second of October, about two o'clock in the
afternoon, it occurred at Montpellier, in France, that a
certain sentence of death was pronounced, and executed the same
day, upon an upright and God-fearing woman of Thou, in
Lorraine, named Catharine Saube, who, loving the Lord her
Saviour more than her own life, steadfastly fought through
death, and, pressing her way through the strait gate* into the
spacious mansions of heaven, left flesh and blood on the post,
in the burning flames, on the place of execution, at
Montpellier.</p>

<p>The history of Catharine Saube is, as old writers testify,
faithfully extracted from the town-book of Montpellier,
commonly called <i>Talamus;</i> which word, Chassanion thinks,
has been corrupted by passing from one language into the other;
and that by the Jews, who at that time resided in great numbers
in France, especially at Montpellier, it was called
<i>Talmud,</i> which among the Hebrews or Jews, signifies a
very large book or roll containing many and various things.
Hence it may very easily have been the case, that the French,
after the manner of the Jewish Maranes, who lived among them,
erroneously called the word Talmud, Talamus, meaning to
designate thereby the large book containing the civil records
of the burgomasters of Montpellier. From this town-book the
following acts were faithfully translated, from the ancient
language of Montpellier into the French tongue, by a
trustworthy person of Languedoc, and in English** read as
follows, "On the 15th day of November, A. D. 1416, after mass had
been read in the parish church of St. Fermin, at Montpellier,
Catharine Saube, a native of Thou, Lorraine, came into that
church, to present herself. About fifteen or sixteen days
previously, she had asked the lords and burgomasters of that
city, for permission to be shut in with the other recluses in
the nunnery on the Lates road.</p>

<p>The aforesaid lords and burgomasters, and all manner of
tradespeople, together with over 1500 townspeople, men as well
as women, came to the church, in this general procession. Said
burgomasters, as patrons, that is, fathers and protectors of
the recluse nuns, conducted said Catharine, as a bride, to the
abovementioned cloister, where they let her remain, shut up in
a cell, after which they all returned home together." <i>Acta
Gallica Ibid. in Martyrolog Gallico.</i></p>

<p>See, these are the identical words of the extract or copy
taken from the town-book; we let the reader judge, as to what
was her reason in applying</p>

<br /><cite>*"Enter ye in at the strait gate. Because strait
is the gate, and narrow is the way which leadeth unto life"
(Matt. 7:13, 14).</cite> 

<br /><cite>*"In our Dutch," says the original.</cite> 
 <p>for
admittance into the nunnery. Certainly, some did not presume so
badly, who have maintained, that experiencing in her heart the
beginnings of true godliness proceeding from an ardent faith,
she was impelled by a holy desire to reveal to the other
recluse nuns the true knowledge of Christ Jesus; finding
herself sufficiently gifted by the Lord, to do this. This is
very probable; since credible witnesses have declared that in
said book <i>Talamus</i> it was also recorded, that some time
after the death of Catharine Saube, the whole convent in which
said Catharine had been confined was burnt, together with all
the nuns; doubtless on account of their religion.</p>

<p>The same public records state, that the year following, A.
D. 1417, on the second of October, about two o'clock in the
afternoon, when M. Raymond Cabasse, D.D., of the order of
Jacobine or Dominican monks, vicar of the inquisitor, sat in
the judgment seat, under the chapter which is beside the portal
of the city hall at Montpellier, in the presence of the Bishop
of Maguelonne, the Lieutenant governor, the four orders, yea,
of all the people, who filled the whole city hall square, he
declared by definite sentence, that the aforesaid Catharine
Saube, of Thou, in Lorraine, who, at her request, had been put
into the cloister of the recluses, was a heretic, and that she
had disseminated, taught and believed divers damnable heresies
against the Catholic faith, namely, "That the Catholic (or true)
church is composed only of men and women* who follow and
observe the life of the apostles." Again, "That it is better to
die, than to anger, or sin against God." Again, "That she did
not worship the host or wafer** consecrated by the priest;
because she did not believe that the body of Christ was present
in it." Again, "That it is not necessary to confess*** one's
self to the priest; because it is sufficient to confess one's
sins to God; and that it counts just as much to confess one's
sins to a discreet, pious layman, as to any chaplain or
priest." Again, "That there will be no purgatory after this
life."</p>

<p>Said town-book Talamus contained also four other articles
with which Catharine was charged, or at least which she
professed; from which it can be inferred that she rejected not
only many papal institutions, but among these also infant
baptism. The extract from the aforesaid town-book, concerning
these four articles, reads literally as follows</p>

<p>1."That there never has been a true pope, cardinal, bishop,
or priest, after the election of the pope (or bishop) ceased to
be done through miracles of faith or verity.</p>

<br /><cite>* Here no third class of members of the church
of Jesus Christ is mentioned, namely, infants; but only men and
women, that is, believing and obedient persons.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* Though she calls the bread of the Supper the
host, yet she does not acknowledge, that the body of Christ is
present in it; hence she refused to worship it.</cite> 

<br /><cite>** The confession recognized by her, is not
according to papistic manner, but agreeable to the teaching of
James 5:16, "Confess your faults one to another, and pray one
for another, that ye may he healed.</cite> 

</div><div id="345"> 

<p>2."That wicked priests or chaplains neither can nor may
consecrate the body of Christ, though they pronounce the
sacramental words over it.</p>

<p>3."That the baptism <i>which is</i> administered by wicked
priests, is of no avail to salvation.</p>

<p>4."That infants <i>which die</i> after baptism, before they
have faith, are not saved; for they do not believe but
<i>through the</i> faith of their godfathers, godmothers,
parents, or friends."</p>

<p>These are the last four articles found in the town-book of
Montpellier; from which it certainly is clearly evident, how
very bold, ardent, and penetrating the faith of this woman was;
so that she did not stop short of attacking even the pope, the
priests, and the superstitions practiced by them, and
convincing them with God's truth. For, when she says, in the
first article, that"there never has been a true pope," etc.,
what else did she indicate, than that there never has been a
true pope, cardinal, bishop, or priest in the Roman <i>church,
seeing</i> the election of the pope was never done through
miracles of faith or verity?</p>

<p>Secondly, when she says, that,"Wicked priests or chaplains
neither can nor may," what else does she mean to say than that
wicked priests, who are not holy themselves, need not imagine
at all <i>(which</i> is nevertheless believed in popery), that
by uttering a few words they can consecrate a piece of bread,
yea, transform it into their God and Saviour? <i>which,
Catharine</i> had declared before, could not even be done by
priests of upright life; for therefore she would not, as she
said, worship the wafer consecrated by the priest, because she
did not believe that the body of Christ was present in it.</p>

<p>Thirdly, when she says, that"The baptism which is
administered by wicked priests is," etc., what else does this
indicate than that the shameful life of the priests destroys
the ministry itself, and that as little as the words <i>which
they</i> pronounce over the host, tend to consecrate it, just
as little tends the baptism practiced by them to salvation?</p>

<p>Fourthly, when she says, that"Infants <i>which die</i> after
baptism," etc., what is this but to say that infant baptism is
not necessary to salvation, yea, conduces in no wise to it?
because infants themselves do not believe, only their
godfathers, godmothers, parents br friends, in their stead; but
that to be saved, one must believe himself, and be baptized
upon this belief, as the Lord says, Mark 16:16; for the faith
of another cannot help any one in the world, and consequently,
cannot help infants to salvation.</p>

<p>Now; when this pious heroine of God would in no wise depart
from her faith, sentence of death was finally pronounced upon
her; and having been led to the place of execution, she was
burnt, at Montpellier, in the afternoon of October 2, 1417.</p>

<p>Concerning her sentence and death, the town book of
Montpellier contains the following words, as translated from
the original into the Dutch (now into the English), "Having
pronounced this sentence upon her, the vicar of the inquisitor,
M. Ray mond, delivered her into the hands of the bailiff, who
was provost or criminal judge of the city. The people entreated
him much in her behalf, that he would deal mercifully with her;
but he executed the sentence the same day, causing her to be
brought to the place of execution, and there burnt as a
heretic, according to law."</p>

<p>These are the words of the aforesaid <i>Talamus,</i> or town
book, which also contains this further addition, "That the
bishop of Maguelonne, after singing a common mass, also
preached a sermon before the members of the council, concerning
Catharine Saube, against many who said that the sentence of
death had unjustly been passed upon her; and rebuked the
indignation of those who spoke against this sentence, with very
vehement and severe words."</p>

<p>This is briefly the extract concerning the martyrdom of this
God-fearing woman, by <i>which many</i> ignorant, plain people
were prompted in their hearts to examine the truth a little
nearer, and to apprehend the light of the Gospel in the midst
of these dark times, <i>which God</i> blessed, as shall be seen
hereafter. See also the second book of the <i>History of the
Persecutions, fol.</i> 572, col. 2-4. Also fol<i>.</i> 573,
col. 1. Also <i>Hist. Mart.</i> by J. S., <i>edition</i> 1645,
fol. 40.</p>

<h2>A GREAT NUMBER OF CHRISTIANS CALLED WAL DENSES, BURNT FOR THE FAITH, IN FLANDERS, A. D. 1421</h2> 

<p>Now, when the children of light, who confessed the doctrine
of the Waldenses, in the midst of the darkness of popery,*
began to lift up their hands more and more, in the Flemish
countries, and to combat with the power of the Word of God the
errors of the Roman <i>church, and</i> to reject principally
papal authority, the mass, transubstantiation, pilgrimages, the
invocation of saints, purgatory, infant baptism, the swearing
of oaths, revenge towards enemies, etc., as we stated
concerning the belief of the Waldenses, in the account for the
eleventh century; the prince and king of darkness, through the
instrumentality of his satellites, laid his hands on them, and
ultimately brought the matter so far that very many who would
in no wise, neither for life nor for death, apostatize, were
condemned to be burnt alive, which was also done with them; and
thus they endured the trial of their faith with great
steadfastness, in the fire, at Donau, in Flanders, in the year
1421. Wherefore the captain of the faith, Jesus Christ, shall
hereafter eternally crown them, as pious champions, with the
unfading crown of honor, according to His promise, "Be thou
faithful unto death, and I will give thee a crown of life"
(Revelation 2:10).</p>

<p>Of the sacrifice of these friends, mention is also made in
the second book of the <i>History of the Persecutions, p.
577,</i> col. 4, where it says, "At</p>

<br /><cite>* The people which sat in darkness saw great
light; and to them which sat in the region and shadow of death,
light is sprung up. Matt. 4:16.</cite> 

</div><div id="346"> 

<p>Donau, in Flanders, A. D. 1421, a great number was
discovered, who professed the doctrine of the Waldenses, many
of whom, remaining steadfast, were burnt alive." Also,
<i>hignier, Hist. Eccl., in the year</i> 1421, <i>ex
Monstrelets.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-Whether those of Dort, in Holland, were also guilty at
this time, of the blood of the saints, we have not been able to
ascertain; nevertheless, the Lord severely chastised them in
this year, 1421, so that, through heavy floods, the city became
an island, and was deprived of seventy-two villages that lay
round about, and were all swallowed up in the water.</p>

<p>Hence, the following inscription is found carved on the
outside of the Speuy Gate of said city, over the arch, in blue
stone:</p>

<p class="c8">"All land and water which here you see, were
Seventy-two parishes, chronicles state, Swallowed by water's
resistless power; Thousand four hundred seventy-one by
date."</p>

<p>This event is so generally known, and has been described by
so many authors, that I deem it unnecessary to add anything by
way of confirmation. A sad thing for the place of our
birth.</p>

<p>NOTE. A. <i>D.</i> 1423.-At this time, writes P. J. Twisck,
Henry Gruenfelder was burnt for the truth, in the city of
Regensburg, in Germany; and shortly after, in the same city,
Henry Rathgeber. <i>Chron., p.</i> 787, cot. 1, compared with
<i>Georg. Pac., cap. 11.</i></p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1425.-About this time Peter Torea was executed
at Speyer, in Germany, and others in Roman countries; because
they confessed the truth and opposed the Roman superstitions.
Compare the last mentioned <i>Chron., p.</i> 788, cot. 2, with
<i>Georg. Pac., cap. 11.</i></p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1427.-At this time, Jerome Savonarola, of
Ferrara, preached throughout Italy that the pope was the
antichrist; for which he was burnt at Florence. He wrote some
meditations on the 51st and 80th psalms, in which he reproves
the tyranny of the pope and his clergy, saying that they are
the boars and wild beasts of the field, which, according to the
words of David, have devoured and utterly destroyed the Lord's
vineyard, and wholly subverted the church of God. In the
last-mentioned <i>Chron., cent;.</i> 762, cot. 2, compared
with <i>Georg. Pac., cap. 11.</i></p>

 
<h1>WILLIAM WHITE, FATHER ABRAHAM OF COLCHESTER, AND JOHN WADDON, BURNT FOR THE FAITH, AT NORWICH, IN ENGLAND, A. D. 1428</h1>

<p>When the light of the Gospel began to break forth with power
also in England, so that some persons not only believed and
adhered to, but also taught and propagated the truth of Christ,
the Romanists, proving themselves children of darkness, evinced
their old nature towards these people, inasmuch as they
informed the King of England, then only a child of six years,
of this matter, aiming to provide against it.</p>

<p>Thus it happened A. D. 1428, that this childking, induced by
the fathers and heads of the Roman church, immediately resolved
to give orders to the officers appointed thereto, to apprehend
these persons and all who were of their persuasion, in order
that they might be punished according to the laws of
England.</p>

<h2>COPY OF THE LETTER OF KING HENRY VI, TO JOHN EXTOR, AND JACOLET GERMAINE, GOV ERNORS OF CHOLCHESTER, TO APPRE HEND WILLIAM WHITE AND HIS ADHERENTS</h2> 
<p>"Henry, by the Grace of God, King of England and France,
Lord of Ireland, to his beloved friends, John Extor, and
Jacolet Germaine, Governors of the Castle at Cholchester,
greeting, "Be it known unto you, that, perfectly relying on your
fidelity and prudence, we have charged you, both together and
each separately, to arrest and apprehend William White, priest,
and Thomas, chaplain, formerly at Settling, in the county of
Norfolk, and William Northampton, priest, and all others that
are suspected of heresy, whoever they may be, and wherever they
may be found, whether in free cities or without; and to send
them, as soon as you have apprehended them, to our nearest
jails or prisons, until we shall have given orders for their
release., "And, therefore, we charge you strictly to keep a close
surveillance on the aforesaid persons, and to faithfully
observe the above in the manner stated before., "We likewise command and charge each and all of our
justiciaries, who have the care of the common peace, as mayors,
margraves, bailiffs, constables, and all our other faithful
officers, by the contents of these presents, that they render
you, both together and each separately, good assistance, and
help and advise you to execute the preceding command, as
becometh them., "In witness of this, we have ourselves caused our letters
patent to be executed, and have signed them at Westminster, the
sixth day of July, in the sixth year of our reign, coinciding
with A. D. 1428." See <i>John Fox, Angl., p.</i> 607.</p>

<p>In old records we find that by virtue of this commission of
the King, John Extor, who was one of these commissaries,
shortly afterwards apprehended six persons at Bungay, in the
bishopric of Norwich, and delivered them into the custody of
William Day and William Rowe, constables of the city of Bungay,
to be brought within ten days to the castle of Norwich., "The names, however, of these six persons," writes John
Fox,"owing to the age of the writing, had almost entirely faded
out, so that they could not well be read, except three or
four." But what further transpired with them, and what
sufferings</p>

</div><div id="347"> 

<p>or death befell them, we do not find clearly expressed.</p>

<p>In the meantime there were also apprehended and brought to
Norwich, three eminent and virtuous men, namely, William White,
formerly a priest, Father Abraham of Cholchester, and John
Waddon, who, after preceding examination, made confession of
the following articles</p>

<h2>CONFESSION OF FAITH OF SAID THREE MARTYRS, TOUCHING THEIR BELIEF AGAINST THE ROMAN CHURCH</h2> 

<p>1."That the children of Christians are sufficiently baptized
in the blood of Christ, and, hence, need not be baptized with
water.</p>

<p>2."That no tithes need be given to the pastors of the Roman
church.</p>

<p>3."That marriage properly consists in the consent or
agreement of union between man and woman (with rejection, as it
seems, of the superstitions which the Romanists are wont to
observe in connection with it).</p>

<p>4."That auricular confession is not necessary, and that one
need not go and confess to the priests, but to God alone; since
no priest has power to forgive a sinner his sins.</p>

<p>5."That no priest has power to make the body of Christ, or
to consecrate it in the sacrament of the altar; but that after
the words are pronounced, there still remains purely material
bread, just as it was before.</p>

<p>6."That each and every Christian believer is a priest before
God.</p>

<p>7."That no one is bound on pain of damnation to observe lent
or any other fast days commanded by the Roman church.</p>

<p>8."That the pope is the antichrist, and his prelates
disciples of antichrist; and that the pope has no authority to
bind or loose on earth.</p>

<p>9."That it is lawful for all Christians to perform bodily
works on holidays, except sins.</p>

<p>10."That it is lawful for priests to marry.</p>

<p>11."That the excommunications and ecclesiastical punishments
decreed by the prelates are not to be regarded.</p>

<p>12."That in particular cases it is not lawful to swear.</p>

<p>(NOTE.-This article seems not to have been recorded
correctly by the notary; for it appears that these people
prohibited the oath not only in particular cases, but in any
wise, seeing the following martyress, Margaret Backster,
pronounces these men faithful preachers of the Word of God, and
confessed herself, that one might not swear at all, neither by
God, nor by, etc.).</p>

<p>13."One ought not to go on pilgrimages.</p>

<p>14."That no worship at all is to be bestowed upon images,
the crucifix, Our Lady, or any other saint or saintess.</p>

<p>15."That the holy water consecrated by the priest in the
church, is not holier or more efficacious han any other river
or spring water; because the Lord blessed all waters together
after their creation.</p>

<p>16."That the death of Thomas Becket (archbishop of
Canterbury), was neither meritorious nor holy.</p>

<p>17."That relics consisting in bones of the dead may not be
worshiped, exhumed, placed on altars in the church, or inclosed
in chests.</p>

<p>18."That prayers made in every place are equally acceptable
to God.</p>

<p>19."Saints should not be worshiped, but God alone.</p>

<p>20."That bells and hand-bells in church, are instituted for
no other purpose than to fill the purses of the priests.</p>

<p>21."It is no sin to oppose the commands of the (Roman)
church.</p>

<p>22."That the (true) Catholic church is only the congregation
of the beloved children of God."</p>

<p>These are briefly the principal articles which they together
unanimously maintained, and whereupon they also suffered death,
inasmuch as they, after severe examination and manifold
torments, refusing to apostatize, were condemned to be burnt
alive; which also took place with them, namely, first with
William White, in September, 1428, in the city of Norwich, and
then with father Abraham, and John Waddon, who, having
commended their souls into the hands of God, offered up a
living and holy sacrifice, acceptable unto God.</p>

<h2>ACCOUNT OF THE IMPRISONMENT AND DEATH OF SAID MARTYRS</h2> 

<p>Concerning the imprisonment and death of William White, as
also of father Abraham and John Waddon, we find the following
account in the writings of John Fox, "William White, who
instructed these people in the light of the Gospel, in the
county of Norfolk, for the space of about four years, until he,
as already stated, was apprehended by virtue of the aforesaid
letter of the king, and brought before William, bishop of
Norwich, by whom he was convicted and condemned on these and
other articles, thirty in number, was burnt alive in the city
of Norwich, in the month of September, A. D. 1428, under King
Henry VI, then but a child of six years., "Having arrived at the stake, and about to open his mouth to
address and admonish the people, and to confirm them in the
truth, one of the bishop's servants struck him on the mouth,
thus compelling him to remain silent."</p>

<p>Thus did this godly man receive the crown of martyrdom, and
ended this temporal life, to the great sorrow of all pious
Christians in the county of Norfolk. His aforesaid wife,
Johanna, who, according to her feeble ability, followed in the
footsteps of her husband by scattering said doctrine
everywhere, and confirming many in the truth of God, had to
suffer much on this account, in the</p>

</div><div id="348"> 

<p>same year and from the same bishop, as Thomas Walden himself
confesses, who, besides others, was present at the examination
and condemnation of said William White.</p>

<p>About the same time there were also burnt the aforesaid
father Abraham of Cholchester, and John Waddon, priest, on
account of the same articles mentioned above. Besides these,
very many other godly men were most cruelly put to death.
Second book of the <i>History of the Persecutions, fol.</i>
582, col. 4, and fol. 583, col. 1, from <i>John Fox, in Actis
Guil. White.</i> Also from Bal., <i>in Guil. White, in
Append.</i></p>

<h2>SPECIAL ACCOUNT OF WILLIAM WHITE, TOUCHING HIS DOCTRINE, SUFFERING AND DEATH</h2> 

<p>In the fifteenth book of the <i>Chronijck van den Ondergang,
page</i> 788, are found the following words, "William Wicht, or
William White, a learned, upright, honest, and eloquent man, a
priest in England, forsook his ministry, and published the
Gospel, by writing, preaching, and teaching, saying: 'that
forgiveness of sins must be obtained from God Almighty alone; that the unmarried life of
the pope and his clergy was the very satanic state, and a
severe captivity of antichrist; and that the hooded, striped
and shaven clergy were the mercenaries and servants of
Lucifer."'</p>

<p>But upon being apprehended, he renounced his doctrine, A.
D.-. Subsequently, however, he became re-established, and
pious, and stronger, in the doctrine, and very boldly suffered
burning for his confession, at Norwich, in England, A. D. 1428.
Compare this with <i>Hist. Andr. Hondorf, fol.</i> 35.
<i>Vincent.</i> Cal., <i>fol.,</i> 134. <i>Georg.</i> Pac.
<i>cap. 11.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-Three years previous to the death of this martyr, A.
D. 1425, a miserable persecution was raised by the Romanists
against some orthodox Christians; concerning which the
following . account is found, for the year 1425, "About this
time, Peter Torea was executed at Speyer, in Germany, and many
others in the Roman countries; because they confessed the truth
or opposed the Roman superstitions." <i>Georg. Pac., cap.
11,</i> compared with P. <i>J. Twisck, Chron., page</i>
788.</p>

</div><div id="349"> 

<h2>MARGARET BACKSTER, IMPRISONED UNTIL DEATH, OR PUT TO DEATH IN PRISON, IN ENGLAND, A. D. 1430</h2> 

<p>According to old chronicles, about A. D. 1430, a God-fearing
woman, named Margaret Backster, was apprehended in England, for
the truth of the Gospel of Christ; and as she would not
apostatize, it seems, she was imprisoned until death, or put to
death in prison; which, though it has remained partly hidden
before men, God will make manifest in that last, great and
terrible day; so that those who have secretly suffered for the
name of Christ, shall then be openly rewarded and crowned, and
those who have secretly shed the blood of the saints, shall be
banished with open shame from the face of God, to be tormented,
as they have tormented others, yet without ceasing, for ever
and ever. Rev. 14:11."Then shall we discern between the
righteous and the wicked." Mal. 3:18; Wisd. 5:1, 2; Matt.
5:46.</p>

<h2>CONCERNING THE ACCUSATIONS BROUGHT AGAINST THIS WOMAN, WE HAVE FOUND THE FOL-, LOWING ACCOUNT IN OLD WRITERS</h2> 

<p>Margaret Backster, wife of William Backster, was accused by
Johanna (wife of Cleveland), of divers articles, as, of having
told her, that she should not swear at all, neither by God, nor
by Our Lady, nor by any saints or saintesses.</p>

<p>Again: That she, the deponent, upon being asked by Margaret
Backster, what she did everyday in church, answered, that she
knelt before the crucifix, repeated five Pater-nosters, and
read as many Ave Marias in honor of Our Lady. Whereupon
Margaret replied, "You do very wrong in kneeling or praying
before such images as stand in the church; for God dwells not
in such churches; nor will He come down from heaven; neither
will He give you any more a reward for such prayers, than a
taper which is placed under the cover of the font, can give
light at night, to those that are in the church."</p>

<p>Again: Said deponent, Johanna Cleveland, being asked by
Margaret, what she believed respecting the sacrament of the
altar, said, that the sacrament of the altar, the consecration,
is the true body of Christ, in the form of bread. Whereupon
Margaret said to her, "Your belief is vain; for if this
sacrament were God and the true body of Christ, there would be
a countless number of gods, since a thousand priests and more,
make a thousand such gods every day, and then eat them."</p>

<p>Again: She said she knew for certain, that the vengeance of
God would speedily come upon the Bishop of Norwich, and others,
who had caused the death of father Abraham, William White, and
John Waddon, faithful preachers of the word of God, and of many
other godly men with them.</p>

<p>She also declared, that she had seen how one of those
servants of Caiaphas smote William White on the mouth or lips,
when he was about to be put to death, and wanted to address the
people, and admonish them for the last time; and that he (that
servant) stopped his mouth, so that he could not at all declare
the will of God. From <i>John Fox, Hist. Angl.</i></p>

<p>Then follow various other articles, believed and confessed
by her, in opposition to the belief of the Roman church, and
militating against images, the power of the priests, the forty
days' fast, pilgrimages, the mendicancy of the monks, too
numerous to mention.</p>

<p>These, then, are the principal and most remarkable things
extracted by John Fox from the old records concerning Margaret
Backster; but since in said records no mention was made as to
what befell her after these accusations, or what became of her,
he did not venture to state it; however, it is supposed, as
some write, that they put her to death secretly in prison, or
imprisoned her until death, since no mention is made of her
penitence or apostasy. Second book of the <i>Hist. of the
Persecutions, fol.</i> 583, from <i>Joh. Fox Angl., page</i>
610.</p>

<p>NOTE. A. <i>D.</i> 1431, one Paul Craus, in Scotland, was
apprehended by Bishop Henry, because he rejected auricular
confession, the invocation of the saints, the idolatrous
sacrament, etc. And as he would not depart from the truth
confessed, he was finally sentenced to the fire, and burnt on
the thirtieth of June, of the same year. Compare <i>hinc. Cal.,
fol.</i> 368. <i>Georg. Pac., cap. 11. Herm. Mod., fol.</i>
274, with the <i>Chron. van den Ond., page</i> 796; also, <i>A.
Mell., fol.</i> 584, <i>col. 1, ex Hist. Scoticae, lib.
17.</i></p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1436, five years after, one Thomas Rhedonensis,
a Frenchman, out of Christian zeal, went to Rome, hoping there
to preach the pure doctrine of Christ. 'But when he found the
opposite there, and noticed the great abominations, hypocrisy,
and pomp, he could not forbear reproving the cardinals and
ecclesiastics for their ungodly life, saying, that they ought
to live modestly and virtuously like Christ and the apostles.
By this he speedily drew upon him the envy and wrath of said
persons, so that he was led before Pope Eugenius, and there
cast into prison; where he was greatly tormented, yea,
ultimately, sentenced to the fire, and burnt. Compare the
last-mentioned chronicle, <i>page 800,</i> col. 2, with Vinc.
<i>Cal., fol. 145. Georg. Pac.,</i> carp. 11.</p>

<p>A. D. 1439, there was condemned as a heretic, in the council
of Basel (where the feast of the Conception of Mary was
instituted and established), a certain upright man, named
Augustine de Roma; but as to what happened to him after said
condemnation by the council, has not been mentioned by the
writers from whom we have quoted this. See the authors cited
above. Also, P. J. Twisck, Chron., Qqge 808.</p>

<p><i>A. D. 1450,</i> Alanus Chartetius wrote a book respecting
the fruits reaped by the church from the unmarried life of the
priests; by which he greatly reproved and censured the abuses
in the church of</p>

</div><div id="350"> 

<p>the Romanists. See further on. In the same year, Peter de
Luna opposed the pope and the ecclesiastical power, and openly
wrote against them, and was therefore also condemned as a
heretic. From <i>Joh. Munst., fol.</i> 182. There were also at
this time, many learned men, who discountenanced purgatory,
confession, letters of indulgence, the mass, vigils, etc.;
which, to all appearance, caused them much misery according to
the body; but as we have not found the particulars in regard to
it, we will pass them by. Compare the account of <i>Fortalius
SidTus</i> with the last mentioned chronicle, <i>page</i> 823,
col. 2, at the foot, and <i>page</i> 824, col. 1, at the
top.</p>

<h2>VERY MANY CHRISTIANS CALLED WALDENSES, PUT TO DEATH AT EICHSTAEDT, IN GERMANY, A. D. 1457</h2> 

<p>After the church of God in Germany had enjoyed peace for a
season, so that she, as it appears, began to grow, flourish,
and increase, the thorns of persecution immediately arose over
her; inasmuch as in the year 1475, particularly in the
bishopric of Eichstaedt, through the envy of the Romanists, her
meetings were broken up, the believers apprehended, and all who
remained steadfast, sentenced to death; who, in great numbers,
from love to their Saviour, and especially for the salvation of
their own souls, gave their bodily life unto death, thus
sealing with their blood, the truth which they had confessed at
baptism before many witnesses; for which the Lord, hereafter,
shall give to them, as triumphant conquerors, palms into their
hands, place crowns upon their heads, and put a new song of
praise into their mouths, so that for all their suffering they
shall rejoice, shout, and be glad forever.</p>

<p>Touching the offering up of these friends of God, we have
not been able correctly to ascertain it, namely, whether they
perished by water, fire, or the sword; except that they were
put to death for the doctrine of the Waldenses. Of their
suffering and death, mention is also made in the second book of
the <i>Hist. of the Persecutions, fol. 590, col.</i> 4, from
<i>Yignier Hist. Eccles., A. D.</i> 1457.</p>

<p>The above-mentioned author, or his printer, has made a
chronological error, putting A. D. 1475, instead of A. D. 1457.
Then follows, "A. D. , a great number of Christians professing
the doctrine of the Waldenses, .were discovered and apprehended
in the bishopric or within the jurisdiction of Eichstaedt, in
Germany; very many of whom were put to death."</p>

<p>This year, 1457, P. J. Twisck fixes as the date of this
event, though he does not make mention of their death, but only
of their severe persecution. <i>Chron., page</i> 829, col. 2,
calling the scene of their persecution Richstadt, instead of
Eichstaedt.</p>

<p>NOTE. A. <i>D.</i> 1465. At this time, Laurence Valla, a man
of great learning, vigorously attacked the power and supremacy
of the pope, placing his salvation in the eternal merits of
Christ. He reproved the vows and the lasciviousness of the
monks, yea, declared publicly, that the pope was the originator
of all wars and dissensions; as also, that he had for sale not
only worldly, but also spiritual goods, yea, even the
(so-called) Holy Ghost. On account of this he was driven into
banishment, and resided at Naples, where he died. <i>Chron. van
den Ond., cent;.</i> 841, eol. 1, from <i>John Munst.,
fol.</i> 192, <i>Georg. Pae., cap. 11.</i></p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1470.-John de Wesalia (that is, John of Wesel)
now taught at Worms, that all believers are saved by pure
grace, through faith in Jesus Christ; and that the supremacy of
the pope is not to be regarded. He defended matrimony, and the
dispensation of the Supper (called the Sacrament) under two
forms, that is, with bread and wine. Human institutions, as
fasts, letters of indulgence, feast days, pilgrimages, extreme
unction, confirmation, auricular confession and satisfaction,*
he utterly rejected. In short, he was regarded as a heretic,
and, in the year 1479, condemned and burnt at Mentz. Compare
<i>Joh. Munst, fol.</i> 196. <i>Chron., Fra., fol.</i> 91, with
the account in the <i>Chron. van den Ond., page</i> 847, eol.
2. Others, however, make mention only of the burning of his
books. See <i>A. M.,</i> fol. 597; This the intelligent reader
can easily distinguish, and, when necessary, reconcile.</p>

<p>Again: Same year as above. George Morgenstern wrote and
taught at this time against the errors of popery and the
manifold attires of the monks. He said that the world was full
of monks, but that scarcely in one out of a hundred could a
little virtue be found. Whether the monks and other priests
received this in good part, we may readily judge, though we
have learned nothing in regard to his suffering. Compare P. J.
Twisck, <i>Chron., page</i> 847, eol. 1, with <i>Catal. Test.
herit., fol</i>. 884.</p>

<h2>STEPHEN, AN ELDER OF THE WALDENSES, BURNT FOR THE FAITH, AT VIENNA, IN AUSTRIA, ABOUT A. D. 1471</h2> 

<p>About the year 1471, an awful persecution arose in and
around Bohemia, against the old, orthodox Waldenses whose
orthodox confession we do not deem necessary to relate again.
This persecution was excited by Johanna, the widow of King
George of Bohemia, who, notwithstanding the death of her
husband, earnestly solicited the princes of the realm,
everywhere to exterminate not only those who were called
Bohemian Brethren, but also the old Waldenses.</p>

<p>For this reason many went and sojourned in Austria; but as
it is peculiar to the rose of the church of God to bloom among
the thorns, it happened that also there no liberty could be
found; so that the servants of antichrist, in the city of
Vienna, in Austria, laid their hands, first of all, on</p>

<br /><cite>* Or Penance imposed by the
priest.-Translator.</cite> 

</div><div id="351"> 

<p>Stephen, one of the elders of their church, besides raising
a severe persecution over the believers in general.</p>

<p>But since this pious man, as becomes a good shepherd of the
flock of Christ, did not wish to give offense to his sheep, and
would not flee from the wolf which threatened to tear them, nor
would, for any torments, forsake either his office or his
faith, sentence of death was finally pronounced upon him,
namely, that he should be executed with fire, that is, burnt
alive. This severe punishment of death he steadfastly endured,
having commended his soul into the hands of God. Of this hero
of Christ, mention is also made in the second book of the
<i>Hist. of the Persecutions, fol</i>. 592, col. 4, thus, "At this time there were not many Waldenses in Bohemia, on
account of the violent persecution; but in Austria there still
lived some, who were likewise for the .most part dispersed,
because of the cruelty of the torments, and the terror of
persecution, after Stephen, one of their elders, . had been
burnt alive at Vienna, in Austria."</p>

<p>NOTE.-A. . D<i>.</i> 1471. Stephen Brulifer, a theologian or
divine, now maintained, that the doctrine was false, yea, a
doctrine of Satan, which ascribes justification to the works
and merits of men (who observe the religion of the priests); as
also, that the church has no power to institute new sacraments.
On account of these and like doctrines, he had to leave Paris,
and come to Mentz, where he is said to have died in the year
1490. See the books cited above; also, <i>John Munst., fol</i>.
199; also, the last mentioned chronicle, p. 851, col. 2.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1474.-D. V. P. Groningensis so clearly exposed
at this time the darkness of popery that his friends called him
a light of the world. Although he could expect nothing better,
together with his fellow brethren, than fire and the sword; yet
he died in peace in the year 1490. P. <i>J. Twisck, Chron.,
p.</i> 855, eol. 2, compared with <i>Joh. Munst., Tract.,
fol.</i> 198.</p>

<h2>SEVERE INQUISITION, INSTITUTED BY THE SPAN IARDS, AGAINST THE BELIEVERS AND ALL WHO WERE OPPOSED TO THE ROMAN CHURCH, A. D. 1492</h2> 

<p>This century, it appears, could not close without a flew
inquisition, which the Spaniards invented, as had formerly been
done by the Germans. It was first instituted against those of
the Jewish, Mohammedan, and Saracenic profession, forasmuch as
some of them, either through fear of persecution, or for some
other reason, had accepted the Roman Catholic faith with the
mouth, but whose sincerity was doubted. But subsequently it
extended to all who did not perfectly observe the Romish
commands; among whom the oft-mentioned Waldenses and Aibigenses
were none of the least, since they not only held the Romish
belief in small esteem, but were also .directly opposed to it
in nearly every point, except the twelve general articles.</p>

<p>Concerning this, there is the following account, "Thus their
(the Spaniards') first decree was, in regard to the
inquisition, to proceed only against the Jews, Saracens, and
Mohammedans; but subsequently much greater power was given to
the inquisitors, to try and punish all who did not observe, in
every particular, the ordinances of the Roman church, and the
Catholic faith. Pope Sixtus IV confirmed this royal scheme. See
the account in the <i>Chron. van den Ond., p. 900, col.
1.</i></p>

<h2>TOUCHING THE INQUISITION ITSELF-THE NATURE OF THE SAME</h2> 

<p>The same writer then relates what the inquisition at this
time was, and the manner in which it was instituted and
executed; concerning which we will give, not the exact words,
as they are rather badly arranged, but only the sense, as
nearly as we can possibly express it. He commences thus, "In
order to relate briefly, what the inquisition is, the reader
must know, that it is an investigation and examination of the
faith, conducted by certain persons appointed thereto (called
inquisitors or fathers of the Holy Office), with such means as
they please, and upon whomsoever they will, but particularly
upon such persons as are denounced to them, or are suspected of
erring in any article from the Roman church, or of holding any
other belief. Those, then, whom they condemn as erring in this
manner, are punished on body and property, according as the
fathers of the Holy Office judge the points of their error of
greater or lesser importance." Concerning this, read <i>George
Nigrinus;</i> also, <i>Peter Bor,</i> in the <i>0orsprong van
de Nederlandtsche Beroerten,</i> compared with the author
mentioned last, <i>same page, col.</i> 2.</p>

<h2>CONCERNING THE PLACES IN WHICH THOSE WHO FELL UNDER THE POWER OF THE INQUI SITION WERE IMPRISONED</h2> 

<p>As regards the place where each was separately confined and
the narrowness of the same; it was as follows: If it is below,
it is wet, damp, and filthy, so that it were better to call it
a grave, than a jail or a prison. If above, it is warm in
summer, yea, hot as an oven. When there are many prisoners,
generally two or three are shut up together in each hovel or
hole, who, when they lie down to rest, have not as much room
left, as to once stir, save perhaps the space of a foot, where
stands a vessel for their necessities and a pitcher with water,
to quench their thirst. Sitting and lying thus day and night in
darkness, these miserable beings emaciate and pine away by
hunger and grief, to such a degree, that scarcely the skin
remains over their bones; besides that they are so severely
tortured, racked and drawn with various cruel instruments, that
their limbs are drawn from their joints. <i>Same page.</i></p>

</div><div id="352"> 

<h2>HOW THE INQUISITORS DELIVERED THE SO-CALLED HERETICS TO THE SECULAR JUDGES</h2> 

<p>Having condemned these people as heretics, after they had
suffered a long season of misery, the inquisitors make a show
of mercy, and deliver them to the magistrates, with these
words, "Whereas the Lords of this holy Tribunal (the
inquisitors), have exerted all proper diligence, to bring back
this seduced person into the bosom of the Roman church, and
have nevertheless accomplished nothing, he constantly remaining
obstinate in his opinion, we hereby deliver him into the hands
of the secular judge, to be punished according to the extent
and import of the Roman laws. Still, we sincerely pray, that,
if he show any sign of confession and repentance, he be treated
with all clemency and mercy."</p>

<h2>HOW THOSE WERE DELIVERED WHO SEEMINGLY HAD RETURNED TO THE ROMAN CHURCH</h2> 

<p>But when the inquisitors have condemned any one, on account
of so-called heresy, to the fire, who, from fear, or for some
other reason, returns to the Roman belief, they deliver him to
the secular judges with these words, "Whereas the holy Tribunal
of the Inquisition cannot believe, that this man's conversion
is sincere, and fears to admit a wolf in sheep's clothing
(notwithstanding his supposed conversion), we deliver him to
the secular judges, earnestly entreating them, to deal in all
mercy with this (accused) one, without breaking a limb or bone,
or shedding a drop of his blood."* Compare with the sense of
these words the abovementioned chronicle, <i>page 900,</i> col.
2, and <i>page 901, col. 1; also Hist. Georg., lib.</i> 6,
<i>Peter Bor, lib. 3. Oorsprong, fol.</i> 9-12. <i>Toneel
Nicol., fol.</i> 87. <i>Guil. Merula, fol.</i> 947. <i>Eman.
Met., fol. 40. Retuald. Gonsalv. in Tract. on the holy Spanish
Inquisition,</i> throughout. <i>Hist. Wenc., fol</i>. 187.
<i>Chron. Ph., Mel., lib. 5, Hist. Alons, de Ulb., lib.</i>
2.</p>

<p>Touching the persecution which resulted to the believers
upon this new charge of the inquisition, we have not been able
to learn the particulars relating to it. Doubtless not a few
perished by those means; since it is certain, that no one that
had a good conscience, and was accused of heresy, could escape
with his life. The contents of the above record inform us, that
many had to suffer on this account; whose names, however, we
have not learned. We commend them to God, who will judge their
cause hereafter. His mercy be gracious to us and to them
all.</p>

<p>REMARK.-From the time of Peter Waldo, about A. D. 1170, we
have throughout followed, in the account of the martyrs, mostly
the line of the Wal denses proper, without digressing
materially to other sects, though some of them very closely</p>

<br /><cite>* They desire that not a limb or bone be broken,
nor a drop of blood be shed, of the accused. Yea, command that
he be dealt with in all mercy; who themselves did not hesitate
to condemn him to the fire. O most unholy wiles of the
so-called"holy" tribunal of the inquisition !</cite> 
<p>approximated to the
belief of the Waldenses. Hence it has come, that the number of
those whom we have noticed as true martyrs, is not as large, as
it might have been, if we had not purposed to follow the
unmixed, pure line of the Waldenses. However, in notes, we have
placed some who approached this belief very closely, and shall
here add a few more.</p>

<p>NOTE. A. <i>D.</i> 1494.-In the fourth year of Henry VII, on
the 28th of April, a very old, honorable widow of over eighty
years, was apprehended for maintaining eight of Wickiffe's
articles (whose belief against infant baptism and the swearing
of oaths, we have already shown), and as she would not
apostatize, she was burned alive in Smithfield, at London. She
said that God and His angels loved her so, that she was not
afraid of the fire. When she stood in the midst of the fire,
she cried aloud, "Lord, receive my soul into Thy holy hands;"
whereupon she gave up the ghost. Compare the account in the
second book of the <i>Hist. of the Persecutions, fol. 599, col.
3,</i> with <i>Joh. Fox Angl., page</i> 671. <i>A. Bal., in
Append. Al., page</i> 627.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1498.-Jerome Savonarola now most zealously
rejected, in his teaching the institutions of men, and
maintained salvation in Christ alone. He defended the partaking
of the holy Supper (called the Sacrament) under two forms; that
is, with bread and wine; in opposition to the practice of the
papists, who gave the common people only a consecrated wafer.
He also rejected letters of indulgence, saying, moreover, that
the pope did not follow the doctrine and life of Christ, and
that he was the antichrist, because he attributed to human
institutions more than to the merits of Christ. For all these
reasons, he was strangled and then burnt to ashes, at Florence,
by order of Pope Alexander VI. Compare <i>Chron. van den Ond.,
page 910,</i> col. 2, with <i>Joh. Munst., fol.</i> 201. Guil.
<i>Meru., fol.,</i> 950. <i>Hist. Andr.,</i> fol. 36. Also,
<i>A. Mell., fol.</i> 600, col. 3, <i>to fol</i>. 606; where it
is stated that two others died with him for the same belief,
and were likewise on the 23rd of May, in the marketplace at
Florence, after preceding strangulation, burnt to ashes, and
the ashes thrown into the river Arnus flowing by.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1499.-Paul Scriptoris taught at this time
against transubstantiation (or the essential change) of the
bread into the body of Christ; as also, that all that is taught
must be tried by the touchstone of the Word of God, adding that
all who teach otherwise teach falsely; hence he said there
should speedily come a change in the (Roman) religion. For this
reason he was driven into banishment by the Minorite monks;
and, having lived full three years in exile, he died in the
beginning of the year <i>1504. Compare P. J. Twisck, Chron.,
page 912,</i> with <i>Joh. Munst. Tract., fol.</i> 199. With
this we conclude the fifteenth century, and, consequently, also
the account of the martyrs who then suffered.</p>

</div><div id="353"> 

<h2>CONCLUSION OF THE FIFTEENTH CENTURY</h2> 

<p>We long to take our leave from this century, since we cannot
longer behold this misery. However, we have only reached the
summit of the mountain of martyrdom. In our ascent we have met
scarcely anything but skulls, thigh-bones, and charred
skeletons. In our descent deep pits, pools and blood-red
rivers, into which the bodies of the saints are thrown,
threaten us; to say nothing of the dark prisons, dungeons,
torture-chambers, and countless instruments of torture.</p>

<p>But the merciful Lard, who has led us by the hand, and thus
far aided us, will lead and help us still further. His love
shown to me in this matter, has been wonderful. For, when the
bands of death were around me, by reason of a half year's
severe sickness, which attacked me in the midst of this work,
His gracious hand restored me, so that I have completed the
work, thus far, though not without anxiety and labor. Hence,
though still in the grasp of severe fevers, I wrote, for my own
remembrance, to the praise of my Creator, and to dedicate to my
brethren this book, these words: </p>

<p class="c3">My heart with anxious fear did
beat,</p>

<p class="c3">That I this work should not complete;</p>
<p class="c3">Since God had touched me with His hand,</p>
<p class="c3">And sickness brought me near my end.</p>

<p><br /></p>
<p class="c3">Now thank I God with joyful song,</p>

<p class="c3">Whose constant presence made me strong,</p>
<p class="c3">Until I to the end have come,</p>
<p class="c3">By ways oft sad and wearisome.</p>

<p><br /></p>

<p class="c3">My brethren, take this book, I pray,</p>

<p class="c3">With ardent love, and favor, yea,</p>

<p class="c3">Which for the truth of God doth burn;</p>

<p class="c3">For this my soul doth greatly yearn.</p>
<p><br /></p>

<p>It is time to proceed, in order that we may reach the end.
We will conclude this first book, comprising fifteen centuries,
the whole of which we had to bring up from the very depths; and
proceed to the second, where our labor will not be so great;
since the living memoirs of old writers and their accounts will
serve us therein. Moreover, the entire work can be comprised in
one great century; relying upon which, we take our leave, and
turn to the following work, to which the Lord be pleased to
grant us His grace, as much as is necessary. Amen.</p>

</div><div id="354"> 

<h1>MARTYRS MIRROR: SECOND PART</h1>

<h2>To my beloved Friends and Fellow Believers in
Christ Jesus our Saviour</h2> 

<p>Most Beloved:</p>

<p>When, in former times, C. Vermander, one of our fellow
believers, desirous of describing the Trojan war, followed the
Greek poet Homer, called the Blind, relating in Dutch rhyme,
the latter's Greek verses treating of this matter, he stopped
when he had completed half, that is, the first twelve books of
the Iliad,* writing these words, "When following the blind in Il'um's siege,</p>

<p>I wearied when but half the way I'd reached."</p>

<p>He became weary when he had traveled half the way, and
certainly, he had good reasons for it; for, who knows not, that
by following a blind man, especially on unknown and dangerous
roads, one may easily be brought into error, yea, severe
misfortunes? And what peaceful and loving person will delight
in contemplating severe wars, and terrible storms and assaults,
made upon a straitened and much distressed city, like Troy
(called Ilium) was in Homer's time? Hence it was proper, and
not less profitable for his soul, that he returned, for, as the
proverb says,"It is better to turn back in the middle of the
way, than to err still further."</p>

<p>But we, much beloved, having come half the way, yea, through
fifteen bloody centuries, became only the more desirous to
proceed, so insatiable was our desire, from what we had already
seen and heard. Yea, what is still more, though we ourselves
suffered much heat and cold, hardship and illness; yea, deadly
sicknesses,** on the way, our desire was not quenched, but much
rather spurred on and stirred up, to reach the end. For, truly,
those whom we met here, were no Greek warriors, who had
enlisted under the hero Agamemnon, or his general Hector. Nor
were the storms and assaults which we beheld, made upon a city
built with hands, much less upon the city of Ilium in Phrygia.
Nor did the conquerors burn pitch-barrels, in token of victory.
Neither did the heroes who had acquitted themselves well, and
faithfully risked their lives, to obtain fading oak leaves, or
laurel wreaths, as marks of honor. Or, if they had died, their
graves were not ornamented with tombs, pyramids, or obelisks,
which must eventually perish with the world.</p>

<br /><cite>* Homer's account of the Trojan war, or the
capture of the city of Ilium.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* God visited me with a half year's, and almost
fatal, sickness; during which time 'I nevertheless wrote much
of the first book. Here things were quite different, beloved
friends; yea, quite different. For heroes met us who served the
King of kings and Lord of lords, Jesus Christ, who, though as a
slain lamb, is truly the Prince of the kings of the earth.*</cite> 

<p>The place which they stormed, was the city filled with all
good things, or the new and heavenly Jerusalem, whose
foundations are all manner of precious stones, the gates of
pearls, the streets of gold, like transparent glass. Her they
took by force, to possess forever; but the God-displeasing
idolatrous city of Babel they destroyed, with spiritual
weapons, as much as lay in their power.</p>

<p>The honor which they obtained for their victory, is an
everlasting honor; their joy a perpetual joy; the triumphal
crowns which were given them, are eternal and heavenly crowns.
Here no earthly tombs, pyramids, or obelisks, need be
mentioned, to honor their dead bodies; since their souls were
honored with God, and obtained rest under the altar** of God,
the place of all the blessed martyrs.</p>

<p>In our thoughts we have wandered through the places where
all this has happened, and with the eyes of faith have beheld
these things.</p>

<p>It is true, the sorrow which we, according to the flesh have
met with, was almost insurmountable, seeing so many miserable,
and not less God-fearing, persons laid down their lives for the
truth confessed; these in the burning fire, those in the
drowning water, others under the keen sword, some in the
strangling rope, yea, in the most destructive teeth of wild
beasts; not to mention countless other means by which they
miserably perished.</p>

<p>But, on the other hand, the joy which we have seen with our
spiritual eyes, and heard with the ears of the heart cannot be
told, yea, can be described by no language. For, some embraced
death, singing and praising God, and what is still more, who
can comprehend this? he who was himself subjected to the death
by fire, laid his hand upon the heads of his half-burnt fellow
brethren, encouraging them, and strengthening them in the
faith. Another, who had tasted the pain of the fire, and
had been drawn out of it, threw herself</p>

<br /><cite>* Rev. 1:5.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* I saw under the altar the souls of them that
were slain for the word of God, and for the testimony which
they held. Rev. 9:9.</cite> 

</div><div id="355"> 

<p>upon one of the dreadfully charred bodies, in order to
finish the conflict once begun, and also to obtain the crown of
martyrdom.*</p>

<p>This we relate over and above what we have noticed in the
first book, although the persons are also there spoken of. We
could adduce many such and similar examples, were they not
sufficiently known, yea, as clear as the sun.</p>

<p>We therefore proceed to the second Book, and will commence
with the beginning of the sixteenth century, where we, as
previously, will treat first of Holy Baptism, etc., and then
of the Holy Martyrs who suffered in those times.</p>

<p>However, our labor will be greatly lessened here (like one
who, panting and perspiring, has climbed a steep mountain, and
then leisurely </p>

<br /><cite>* This is adduced, from Thuanus and Cesar
Heisterb., by D. B. Lydius, speaking of the Waldensian martyr
Arnold, whom we have noticed for the year 1163, and some of his
fellow martyrs. He says, "This Arnold was burnt, together with
nine of his disciples, among whom were two women, on the fifth
of August, at the Jewish cemetery, at Cologne. Before his death
(or before he was dead), he laid his hand upon the heads of his
then half-burnt fellow brethren, saying: 'Adhere steadfastly to
your faith; this day you shall be with the holy martyr,
Laurence.'"</cite> 

<br /><cite>One of the women, he writes, who from mercy, had been drawn
out of the fire, with the promise that she should be married,
or, if she were inclined this way, placed in a convent, asked
where Arnold lay, who had been burnt, with his fellow
believers, as a heretic. And when his body, which by this time
was mostly burnt, was pointed out to her, she escaped the hands
of those who led her, and threw herself upon Arnold's body, in
order thus also to obtain the crown of martyrdom.-D. Bal. Lyd.
Tract. Where the church was, etc., page 59, cot. 1, from
Thuan., lib. 6, Hist. Also, Cesar Heisterb. dist. 5, cap. 19.</cite>

<p>descends, taking his ease), since, as far as the martyrs are
concerned, the previous accounts and printed copies will serve
our purpose; in which we do not propose to make any essential
change, for we do not wish to diminish the good work of our
dear fellow brethren who, in this matter, have acted in a holy
manner before the Lord, except where it may be necessary
because of some account which we have added thereto.</p> 

<p>At the same time we hope to enrich these accounts with
various pious witnesses of Jesus, from faithful memoirs and
written records, which were never before made public; as also
their examinations, death sentences, letters, and other things
connected with this matter; which we have obtained for this
purpose from the hands of magistrates. criminal authorities,
criminal clerks and other sources, at no small trouble and
expense.</p>

<p>This, then, shall be the order of the following work, which
we wish may be acceptable to God, edifying to our neighbor and
conducive to the profit and salvation of our own soul through
Jesus Christ, our only and eternal Saviour, praised and blessed
forever. Amen.</p>

<p><i>Yours, most affectionately in the Lord,</i><br />
<i>THIELEM J. VAN BRAGHT.</i><br />
<i>Dort, A. D. 1659.</i><br />
<i>Page 355</i></p>
<a name="355"></a>

<h2>PREFACE TO SECOND PART</h2> 

<p>Christian Reader:</p>

<p>In this our address we shall present to you nothing new or
uncommon, but -that which in former times a certain lover of
the holy and blessed martyrs communicated to his
contemporaries, for general edification, concerning the faith
and steadfast death of many of them; except a few, passages in
the beginning, and also a little -further on (which do not
properly belong here; and to which we have affixed certain
marks to prevent mistakes.) These we have omitted here, and
added, in brackets[], something of our own, concerning which we
stand ready to give an answer if required.</p>

<p>Having concluded a certain censure concerning those of Horn,
the above writer speaks thus of the immovable confidence of the
pious confessors of Jesus Christ, "We are fully confident that all these witnesses were
unanimous in regard to the -essential articles of faith; they
all believed .in the one eternal, true God, the Father, and in
His only Son, Jesus Christ, our Lord and Saviour. They all had
respect to the sacrifice of the unspotted Lamb, in whom the
Father had placed the reconciliation of our sins. They
committed, yea, by the covenant of baptism, obligated
themselves to serve this Lord, whom the Father had ordained as
their teacher and lawgiver. They waited for the blessed
resurrection and glorious recompense promised to all those who,
through the grace of the Spirit, in the race of the Christian
vocation, earnestly and steadfastly run for the prize set
before them. They certainly, which is the most important,
showed by their deeds, that they had not only a lip faith, and
literal knowledge, which is found only in the brains of men,
but an effectual and true faith, which, dwelling also in the
heart and mind, is inspired by love, and through which they,
according to the example of the saints, conquered all
things."</p>

<p>Proceeding to the sufferings of the martyrs, he says:, "Contemplate the suffering which these pious martyrs
endured, and how wonderfully God wrought with them; how
manfully, constantly and patiently they fought, through the
effective and ardent love of God, confirming the truth of what
is said in Cant. 8:6, namely, that 'Love is strong as death,
and jealousy cruel as the grave.' For, here you see as in a
mirror, that neither conjugal longing and love, nor parental
affection and solicitude, nor the desirable company of near and
confiding friends, nor anything which God has put into His
creatures, for the delight of man, could move or restrain these
heroes; but that they, contemning all this, an(: separating
from wife, children, rela ives and friends, house and property,
they gave themselves up to severe bonds and imprisonment, to
every adversity and hardship, to cruel tortures and martyrdom,
undaunted by the threats of the most awful death on the one
hand, and unmoved by the many fair promises, to forsake the
wholesome truth, the love of God, and the blessed hope on the
other; so that they could freely say with the holy apostle
Paul: 'Who shall separate us from the love of Christ? Shall
tribulation, or distress, or persecution, or famine, or
nakedness, or peril, or sword?' Romans 8:35. But they found and
showed it to be true that according to the testimony of the
apostle, neither death, nor life, nor things present, nor
things to come, shall be able to separate us from the love of
God, which is in Christ Jesus. Verses 38 and 39. Through this
love they overcame all things, and performed glorious deeds
beyond the power of man. Weak women exhibited more than manly
strength. Maidens and young men in the bloom of youth were
enabled, by the help of God, to despise the alluring world,
with all her fair and great promises; and these young and
tender branches, by faith and patience, conquered the mighty of
this world; the simple and unlearned confounded the sage
doctors; so that these, silenced frequently through the truth,
disputed with threats of fire and sword, and, though in vain,
defended themselves thereby; manifesting in this manner their
impotence and malice. Christ strikingly fulfilled in them the
promise made to His disciples, Matt. 10:19, namely, that He
would give unto them what they should speak in that hour when
they should be brought before kings and governors. In sight of
scaffolds and wheels, of fire and sword, they fearlessly
confessed the truth, so that the judges and inquisitors were
sometimes astonished, sometimes confounded, and sometimes
enraged and startled. Of this boldness, the martyrs themselves
boasted in their letters, thanking God, for, knowing their own
weakness, they experienced the strength of God in the cross, so
that they could take upon themselves with a composed yea, with
a joyful mind, that from which human nature beyond measure
seemed to recoil and flee. Yea, they were filled with such an
exuberant and great joy, begotten in them through the
unhindered contemplation of the heavenly glory in faith and
hope, that they would have preferred no royal banquet to this
parting feast.</p>

<p>They were endowed with such strength that even cruel and
inhuman torture could not extort from them the names of their
fellow brethren, so that, filled with divine and brotherly
love, they sacrificed their bodies for their fellow believers.
The brother-</p>

</div><div id="357"> 

<p>hood in general was thereby so enkindled with zeal and love,
that each, despising the earthly and regarding the heavenly,
prepared his heart for the sufferings to which his brethren
were subjected, and by which he himself was daily threatened.
They shunned no danger, in the way of sheltering their fellow
believers, visiting them in prison, calling boldly to them in
the place of execution, and comforting and strengthening them
with words of Scripture. The tyrants found themselves deceived
in their design; they thought they could cause these Christians
to apostatize; they put them into assurance of their salvation;
they supposed they could destroy and extirpate those who
opposed them, but, on the contrary, they raised up more
opponents; for many of the spectators, at the said spectacle of
killing people, who were harmless and of good name and report,
yea, who would rather die than do ought by which they supposed
to offend God, were thereby brought to reflection, and thus to
investigation, and ultimately to conversion.</p>

<p>Besides these noble examples of love, patience and
constancy, we find in their writings many devout lessons,
edifying teachings and comforting admonitions, written in dark
prisons, hurried and negligently indeed, and on account of
inconvenience and with poor materials, but sealed with the most
glorious mark, their own blood. Then the words have power and
weight, when their truth is confirmed and attested by the deed.
Seneca, in his epistles, censures philosophizing with words,
and not with life, as something shameful. Here you find words
which devotion has penned, which the pressure of suffering has
extorted from the inmost of the heart; words which have not
been warped or bent by worldly considerations or carnal
passions; but which were sincerely and unfeignedly spoken to
their friends, at the end of life, as a last will, and
confirmed with death. Husbands in tribulation consoled their
wives, admonished them to godliness, and incited them to
steadfastness. Parents gave useful instructions to their
children, presented to them the changeableness, vanity and
perishableness of visible things; they taught, counseled and
commanded them to forsake the world and the lusts thereof, and
to cleave to and alone serve God, the supreme and only good.
You perceive here how they were sometimes assaulted with many
temptations and enticements, not only of wicked men, but of the
devil; how the enemy of souls, bringing them upon the pinnacle
of the temple, as it were, showed them the splendor and glory
of this world, in order to entice them to worship this; Matt.
4:5, 8. How he sometimes, with the terror of impending
suffering, assailed the soul with fearfulness, and how, by
false imaginations, he endeavored to bring the minds to
apostasy, despondency and despair; which these pious heroes,
arming themselves with watching and constant prayer to God,
valiantly overcame, fighting manfully through all temptations,
promises and threats, even unto death, and gaining the victory.
Now, even as the reading of, and meditating upon, the pious
fathers, is very profitable in every case, so these persons
stand as instructive and consoling examples, for all who are
visited with crosses and temptations: Here manifest themselves
shining beacons.of living faith, of sure hope, and ardent love.
Here is seen the positiveness of God's promises, in fearless
and joyful hearts, in the midst of suffering. Matt. 10:.19.
Here is the steadfastness of the saints, whom Christ crowns
with salvation. Matt. 24:13. It is true, by the worldlyminded
they are accounted as filth and offscouring (I Cor. 4:13), and
their actions stigmatized as sheer folly and madness; but they
comfort themselves in God, and rely on His promises. They have
learned that the cross must thus be taken up, if one would be
worthy of Christ. Matt. 10:38. They know that they are
strangers and pilgrims in this world, I Pet. 2:11, and remember
the words of their Master, who says, "If ye were of the world,
the world would love his own; but because ye are not of the
world, therefore the world hateth you" (John 15:19) . They are
confident that if they lose their life here, they shall find it
again hereafter. Matt. 10:39. They believe that we must confess
the name of Christ, if we would have Him confess us before His
heavenly Father. Matt. 10:32. They know that their Lord and
Master suffered Himself, leaving us an example that we should
follow His steps; who was thus minded, that when He was
reviled, He reviled not again, and when He suffered, threatened
not, but prayed for His enemies. I Peter 2:21, 23. They hold
that if they would reign with Christ, they must here suffer
with Him. II Tim. 2:12. They are mindful of the words of
Christ, that the servant is notgreater than his master, Matt.
10:24, and that therefore, as Christ suffered, they must arm
themselves with the sane mind. I Peter 4:1. They know
themselves to be defenseless sheep, a prey to the devouring
wolves. But they do not fear them, who can kill only the body,
but Him who holds body and soul in His hand. Matt. 10:28. They
learned long ago that all that will live godly shall suffer
persecution. II Tim. 3:12. Christ foretold them that they
should be hated of all men for His name's sake, yea, should be
delivered into tribulation, and be killed; and what is still
more, that those killing them should think that they do God
service. Hence, they think it not strange when they are tried
by suffering; but rejoice that they are partakers of the .
sufferings of Christ, knowing that, when His glory shall be
revealed, they shall also rejoice with Him. I Peter 4:12, 13.
They glory in tribulation (Rom. 5:3), believing that thereby
their faith is tried and refined. I Pet. 1:7. They experience
that patient suffering begets a glad and constant hope, and
that the cross, which to those who perish, is foolishness, is
to them the power of God unto salvation (I Cor. 1:18), and
esteem it as the grace of God, when for conscience they suffer
wrongfully. I Pet. 2:19. And though they be troubled,
perse-</p>

</div><div id="358"> 

<p>cuted and cast down here, yet they are not in despair,
forsaken, or destroyed; but with holy Paul, they always bear
about in their bodies, the dying of the Lord Jesus, that the
life also of the Lord Jesus might be made manifest in their
bodies. II Cor. 4:8-11. They feel in the abounding of the
sufferings of Christ, an abounding consolation through Christ.
II Cor. 1:5. They believe that the sufferings of this present
time are not worthy to be compared with the future glory. Rom.
8:18. Hence they arm themselves for .tribulation and suffering,
as true heroes of their captain, Jesus Christ. They have before
them a great brotherhood, who finished their course in this
way. Cain could not bear his brother's piety and favor with
God, and slew him. Gen. 4:8. Violence and oppression ruled the
first world. Gen. 6:13. Pious Lot had to be the sport and lust
of the Sodomites. Gon. 19. David had to flee before Saul. The
prophet Isaiah lamented already in his time that he who
departed from evil had to be everyone's prey and derision. Many
holy prophets and men of God had to endure persecution and
martyrdom from the wicked, as holy Zacharias, Amos, Micah,
Jeremiah, Daniel, and the three young men, Eleazar, the mother
with her seven -sons, and others, who need not be mentioned,
since the time and age of the New Testament, furnish abundant
material in this respect. John, the forerunner of Jesus, had to
offer his neck to the sword, in prison. Matt. 14:10. Our
captain of the faith, Jesus Christ, had to enter into His glory
through much derision, ignominy and suffering, and ultimately
through the most shameful death of the cross. His apostles and
disciples, as the chronicles state, followed their Master.
Peter and Paul were put to death by Emperor Nero. James, the
brother of John, was killed with the sword by Herod. Acts 12:2.
Matthew was nailed to the earth, in India. Bartholomew was
flayed. Andrew was crucified. Thomas was thrust through with
darts. Philip was nailed to a cross, and then stoned to death.
Simon Zelotes was scourged and crucified. James, the son of
Alpheus, was cast down from the temple, at Jerusalem, and then
beaten to death with sticks. Judas Thaddeus was killed, in
Persia, by wicked heathen priests. Matthias also obtained the
martyr's crown. Mark, the evangelist, was dragged about by a
cord around his neck, at Alexandria, till he died. John, the
apostle, banished in the island of Patmos, adorned the Gospel
with suffering [as is circumstantially recorded in the first
book, first century, in the account of the martyrs]. This was
the way of the holy prophets. This is the path which our
Saviour and His messengers, and afterwards many disciples,
trod. Polycarp, the disciple of John, was burnt alive at
Smyrna. Ignatius, bishop of Antioch, was torn by wild beasts
[as is stated in the second century.] Even the Roman bishops,
in the first three hundred years, were mostly all martyred, and
subjected, with the common Christians, to persecution by the
heathen Em perors [these, however, we commit to God]. Under the
Emperor Diocletian, there was such an awful persecution that it
seemed as though the Christian name would be utterly
extirpated; so that the first churches at the time of Emperor
Constantine were so accustomed to persecution, that they
deliberately prepared themselves for suffering.</p>

<p>Since, then, the God-fearing who are visited with the cross,
have so many holy martyrs as predecessors; and since the cross
is foretold them; yea, since such glorious promises are given
to those who suffer, it is a little thing for them that they,
who gladly acknowledge themselves soldiers under the bloody
banner of Christ, are therefore aspersed and ridiculed as
fools. The Christian reader may here perceive and firmly
conclude that the cross is also the ensign of those who serve
and follow Jesus Christ, the Captain of the faith; and that, on
the contrary, those who afflict others, with crosses and
sufferings, do not belong to this Captain, but are under
another leader. For the true Christians have never persecuted
the innocent, but were always persecuted themselves; and in the
primitive church, even in the time of Constantine, when the
bishops began to rise a little higher in the world, and were
protected by the Emperor, it was considered an abomination to
.persecute any one; they, however, suffered persecution
themselves. It was then deemed such a detestable thing, to put
to death or persecute any one for heresy, that Bishop Ithacius
was excommunicated and separated from the church, because he,
through the tyrant Maximus, had brought about the death of
Priscilian, the heretic; as the Roman cardinal, Caesar
Baronius, very plainly describes in his church history, for the
year 385.</p>

<p>He also states further, that it is utterly incompatible with
the meekness of a pastor. Again, that none of the holy fathers
even commended it, that an ecclesiastic should seek to bring a
heretic to his death. So that, according to him, St. Martin
would have no fellowship with the aforesaid Ithacius or his
adherents, because their hands were stained with the blood of
Priscilian. And though, induced by the threats of the tyrant
Maximus, St. Martin feigned to have fellowship for an hour with
Ithacius, he nevertheless subsequently manifested great regret
for it, since he felt that in consequence of his dissimulation,
the gift of healing was partly taken from him.</p>

<p>From this it is clearly manifest, how falsely they boast of
being the successors of Christ and His apostles, and of the
primitive church, who have so abominably stained their hands
with the blood of innocent people, people who only confessed
and practiced the Gospel according to the full dictates of
their conscience; yea, concerning whom the tyrants themselves
frequently testified, that their life was pious; that they
would not willingly lie, or speak against their conscience; and
that they were not apprehended on account of any misdeeds, but
only because they did not obey the mother, the holy</p>

</div><div id="359"> 

<p>church, and the decree of the Emperor. It is so far f rom
such being the . true and apostolical church, that there is no
surer mark of the false and antiChristian church, than the
killing of heretics, or rather, so-called heretics; for however
abominable heresy may be, this is the most abominable of all.
For what indeed is more opposed to the peaceable, meek,
merciful, forgiving, and revengeless character of Christ, than
to persecute any one for his faith? What can we conceive of
that militates more against the holy laws and commandments of
Christ, which chiefly consist in love, peace, humility,
meekness, lowliness, mercy, forgiveness, compassion, etc. If
Christians are called (as they do) to requite hatred with love,
evil with good, cursing with blessing; yea, must they,
according to the doctrine of Christ, pray for them who oppress
and persecute them; how, then, is it possible that they can
remain Christians and themselves oppress and persecute others
who have never laid a straw in their way? Can we believe, that
any trace, yea, any true knowledge of the spirit and word of
Christ remains where there is such a direct antichristian
disposition and action? If, according to Christ, false prophets
are to be known and judged from their fruits (Matt. 7:16),
there can be nothing by which they may, more readily, be
distinguished, than from their persecuting others; for they are
witnesses unto themselves, as Christ said to the Pharisees,
that they are the children of them who killed the true
prophets, and who fill up the measure of their fathers. Our
Saviour compares them to serpents and a generation of vipers,
who cannot escape the damnation of hell. Matt. 23:31-33. The
disciples of Christ, who still entertained the hope of the
establishing of an external and carnal Israel; asked their
Lord, whether they should, according to the example of Elias,
command fire to come down from heaven, upon those who did not
receive Him. Whereupon Christ earnestly rebuked them,
saying, "Ye know not what manner of spirit ye are of. For the
Son of man is not come to destroy men's lives, but to save
them." Luke 9:54-56. But these heretickillers, who boast of
being the vice-regents and followers of Christ, yea, doctors of
divinity, dare, not only without asking Christ, but even
against His express prohibition and example, whet the sword,
and stir up the fire, not to murder those who refuse to receive
Christ, but those who are ready to adhere to and follow Him
even unto death. By this they clearly indicate, first, that
they are governed and impelled by the spirit not of Christ, but
of the devil (who was a murderer from the beginning, John
8:44); and, secondly, that they do not come like Christ and His
followers, to save men's souls, but to destroy them; since they
kill not only the bodies of the innocent, thus dishonoring the
image which is created after God (Gen. 5:1), and making
themselves guilty of the mortal sin of bloodshedding (Gen. 9:6)
but, O awful deed! they purposely and as much as lies in their
power, also endeavor to kill their souls, whom, being
considered by them in a state of damnation, they suddenly cut
off from the time of repentance. Matt. 26:52. They would
presumptuously teach Christ, the perfect wisdom; for He deemed
it well, and commanded His disciples, to let the tares grow
until the harvest, lest they should root up the wheat with the
tares, but these teach and do the opposite. Weeding contrary to
the command of Christ, they root up not only the tares, but,
passing by bad, unchaste, extravagant, pompous, avaricious,
mendacious, deceitful, envious, hateful, and vindictive men,
they also, from the field of the world, root out the purest
grain.</p>

<p>They usurp the office of the Most High, and would command
and compel the souls who are not under them, but under the
sceptre of Jesus Christ (Matt. 10:28); yea, they set themselves
not only beside, but above the Divine Majesty, demanding that
men should obey them rather than God. God has commanded that we
should serve Him with all our hearts (Dent. 6:5), but these
prohibit men from serving God in this manner, and constrain
them contrary to the convictions of their consciences to follow
their laws and institutions. Matt. 21:37: Christ constrained
the people to conversion', by words of admonition, persuasion
and reproof, and of those who were offended at His doctrine, He
only said, "Let them alone: they be blind leaders." Matt. 15:14.
But these compel with fire and sword, so that they deliver -to
the executioner those who embrace the doctrine of Christ
according to all their ability, and do not feel themselves at
liberty to follow these blind leaders; bringing them into a
strait, where they cannot without danger, escape either to the
right or to the left; for, if they obey these, they fall into
the hands of God; and if they adhere to God, they cannot escape
the cruelty of these men.</p>

<p>Now; in order to give a semblance and gloss to their
unchristian and ungodly punishments of heretics., they befoul
these pious people with the stain of disobedience, and, washing
their hands, as it were, from innocent blood, lay the guilt
upon the edicts, which, however, were devised, and are daily
executed, through their bloody advice and instigation. But,
pray, who has given them power to make edicts against souls and
consciences, to reign thereby in the kingdom of Christ, in-
which they themselves can be but subjects and servants? Will
this excuse them? By no means. The Jews who sought to bring
the innocent Jesus to death, also said like these, "We have a
law, and by our law he ought to die, " John 19:7. They know, or
ought to know, that at the tribunal of Christ judgment will be
rendered, not according to human edicts, but according to the
divine word, "The word that I have spoken," said the Lord,"the
same shall judge him in the last day," (John 12:48), and,
therefore, everyone-is necessarily bound more to the law of
Christ, than to their laws and edicts; yea, an account will
have to be given of these edicts,</p>

</div><div id="360"> 

<p>at that tribunal, and that whereby they sentenced the
innocent wrongfully to death, will then justly aggravate their
own sentence. What will they offer as an excuse, when an
account will be demanded of them, why they exercised such
bloodthirsty tyranny over souls? why they wrested the sceptre
out of the hand of Christ, and usurped His seat? why they made
themselves masters in that kingdom in which they, as servants,
must themselves give an account of their actions? why they, as
evil servants, treated and beat their fellow servants so
cruelly; though He (Christ) had warned and threatened, to cut
such asunder, and to appoint them their portion with the
hypocrites, where there is weeping and gnashing of teeth (Matt.
24:45, 51)? why they did not consider, that those shall have
judgment without mercy, who have showed no mercy (Jas. 2:13)?
What terror, what anxious remorse and fleeing will it cause
when, to convict them of their wickedness, there shall come
forth those whom they fettered, chained, beat, killed and
martyred, whom they then accounted fools and madmen, and whom
they now behold in such great glory and esteem with God.</p>

<p>In that day, when all hidden things must come to light, such
empty and artificial excuses will not avail. Hence, now is the
time to consider how unchristian it is, to persecute
Christians; how much deserving of death it is, to shed innocent
blood; how culpable it is, to dishonor the image of God; how
perverse and vain it is, to fight against spiritual truth with
carnal weapons; how unnatural and unreasonable it is, to do
unto another that which we would not have done to ourselves,
and who of all would like to be forced in the convictions of
his conscience. How presumptuous it is, to usurp the seat of
God, and to wish to rule over the conscience, whereas Christ
commanded, to render unto Caesar the things which are Caesar's
and unto God the things that are God's. Matt. 22:21. They
should bear in mind, that Christ prayed for His persecutors,
and learn from it, how unbecoming it is, that those who would
be Christians, persecute others, who pray for them. Luke 23:34;
I Pet. 2:19. They should contemplate, how great an evil it is,
to comp 1 any one's conscience by the terrors of fire, rop~,
and sword, when Paul so strictly forbids to wound the weak
conscience of the brethren. Rom. 14:15. They should remember,
that, since the holy apostle commands no greater punishment for
heretics, than to shun them, they also need, yea may, use no
greater. Tit. 3:10. Surely, if they would well examine
themselves, they would not so readily proceed to condemn, but
would suffer themselves to be restrained, since Christ declares
that with what measure we mete, it shall be measured to us
again. Matt. 7:2. They would fear, if they knew themselves
aright, that in condemning another they might condemn
themselves; since it might easily be the case, that before God
the judge was as culpable as the one judged.</p>

<p>They further produce, in defense of, or, rather as an excuse
for, the punishments of heretics, these reasons: 1. Thereby to
bring and compel them to conversion. 2. That their heresy might
not propagate itself, and pollute others. 3. To prevent
rebellion. As regards the first, it is the duty of every
Christian, to promote the salvation of his neighbor as much as
is possible. But how is this to be done? by external compulsion
with fire and sword? Impossible; this touches and affects the
body, but not the conscience, which must not be compelled, but
led and instructed. The Word of God is the sword with which all
error and heresy must be cut down. If the supposed error cannot
be conquered with the power of truth, swords will be dull
before it. And though a man, through dread of suffering,
renounce his belief with the mouth, yet will he not do it with
the heart; and thus, instead of converted Christians,
dissembling hypocrites are made. But if a man remain steadfast,
and is put to death, how can this tend to his conversion, since
every means of conversion is taken away? For, one of two things
is certain: if he is a damnable heretic, he is cast down into
hell; but if he is not, a saved Christian is put to death;
choose whichever you please and an abominable crime is
committed. What is it then, that urges them thus to promote any
one's conversion? what binds them to this? who enjoins it upon
them? who advises them to it? yea, who gives them permission to
do it? and which of the apostles has set such an example?
Truly, such reasons are but fig leaves and covers with which
they seek to hide their shame and wickedness. They pretend that
they aim at the conversion of men, but in fact seek to secure
their own pleasure, honor and lust, in order thus to exercise
undisputed despotism in the kingdom of God. So far is this from
being the case, that any one's conversion is promoted thereby,
that on the contrary, all impartial persons conceive an
aversion against them; so that even the good, (if any good
remains, or can be found, in the persecutors), is rendered
suspicious; yea, entirely destroyed, inasmuch as their words,
however entreating and flattering they may be, can obtain no
entrance or credit, neither do they deserve it. For, who would
expect to learn anything godly or Christian from those who are
pregnant with murder, and whose hands are stained with innocent
blood?"Do men gather grapes of thorns?" Matt. 7:16.</p>

<p>As to the second, it is so far from the fact that supposed
heresy should be checked by tyranny, that it is almost always
spread by it; for, when hands are laid on people whose life is
blameless and pious, and they are imprisoned, tortured and
subjected to a painful death, only for the name of Christ, and
because they, as they openly confess, dare consent to nothing
contrary to their conscience,-this produces reflection and
attention in all. impartial minds, who, on investigating the
matter, discover the innocence of the persons accused and
persecuted, and thus conceive an aversion to such degenerate
Christians, who persecute others.</p>

</div><div id="361"> 

<p>and associate themselves with those who so valiantly bear
the cross of Christ, as examples abundantly testify; which
verifies what an ancient father has said. <i>The blood of the
martyrs is the seed of the church.</i> When the tyranny of
popery was at its -height, apostasy from it was greatest, for
martyrdoms are effectual sermons, which touch the heart, and
awaken the slumbering eyes; nor is this strange, for he that
has a little knowledge of the Christian religion, and is not
utterly blinded by malignant partiality comes easily to believe
that the persecutors must be heretics themselves, since Christ
and His disciples never persecuted any one, but always suffered
persecution themselves. They easily perceive, that these cruel
men are not innocent, meek and defenseless sheep, to which
Christ compares His followers, but much rather ravening wolves,
which have crept into the fold of Christ, and devour the sheep.
John 10:1. The plain and pure truth, confirmed by an innocent
life, is the means to overcome error and falsehood; they who
depart from this to carnal weapons, betray themselves, and
disclose their injustice and impotence; for, since they cannot
prevail against the truth, they endeavor, by exterminating and
crushing the persons, also to exterminate and crush the truth.
From all this it appears, how empty an excuse they seize to
defend their tyranny, and what frail weapons they employ, to
uphold the delusion. But it is a purely fictitious excuse, with
which to disguise their purpose, and to attire in a strange
dress the ugliness which cruelty presents to every eye, and,
through deception, to make it pleasing to one another. They
pretend to be zealous for the salvation of the people, but, in
fact, endeavor to propagate their own kingdom of lies; and if
aught rises in opposition to it, they seek to subdue it with
the arm of flesh. The Pharisees, in the time of Christ,
objected to Christ for the same reason, namely, that He was
perverting the people. Luke 23:2. Their self-love and thirst
for political power begat in them a bitter hatred and envy
against our Saviour, on account of which they sought to bring
Him to death. This they cover; of this they are silent. They
cry, as though they were filled with a godly zeal, "This fellow
perverts the nation;" though they, as well as these sought to
seduce the people from Christ, the truth, to their own
lies.</p>

<p>As regards the accusation of rebellion, this also is not an
invention of yesterday or today. He (Christ), said the
Pharisees, stirreth up the people with His doctrine; whereas
they stirred up the people against Christ, who preached nothing
but peace, love, humility, meekness, and the like, and whose
life and actions were nothing but an overflowing fountain of
kindness, benevolence and mercy. Thus did they stain, without a
shadow of evidence, with the slander of rebellion, people who
lived in all simplicity and integrity, and made open
confession, that they were bound by the law and example of
Christ, to live without revenge, and exercise a forgiving
spirit towards everyone, yea, to love those hat hate them, and
to do good to their enemies. He that examines the history of
the Netherlands and. Germany, for the last sixty years, will
find that rebellion, contention, and dissension, yea,
alienations and destruction of countries and cities, have been
caused by persecution on account of religious differences; for
religious zeal cannot be cut off with the sword, nor consumed
by fire. On the contrary, it is evident, and confirmed by
present practice, that many and various religious persuasions
can live together peaceably and quietly, and that the cities
and countries where liberty of conscience is maintained, have
prospered, and experienced the special blessing of God. Hence,
also, the H. M. Lords States of these countries, seeing the
great mistakes of the King of Spain, have never been willing to
follow in his steps, but expressly declare, as appears from the
records of the <i>Treaty of Peace at Cologne, page 38,</i> "That
religion does not concern men, but God, and that the king owed
obedience to it as well as the subject." They declare to have
found by experience, that force and weapons are of little value
for the spreading and preservation of religion; and that, even
as they would not have that violence should be done to their
consciences, so it does not well accord with the law of God,
for them to do violence to the consciences of others. Again on
page 54, it is declared, "That the Christian religion is a great
mystery, and that for the promotion of the same, God does not
use wicked soldiers, nor bows or swords." Again on <i>page</i>
57, "We have learned that the government of souls and
consciences concerns God alone; and that He is the true avenger
of violated or dishonored religion." And though some, forgetful
of their own cross, or that of their ancestors, incited to a
revival of the abolished slavery, yet their E. E. never lent a
willing ear to it, nor suffered themselves to be blind
executors of such partial and pernicious counselors, who
thereby sought to build and establish more their own kingdom,
than the kingdom of Christ. But, through the goodness of God,
we still have at the present day, authorities under whose
protection we can lead a quiet and peaceable life, in all
godliness and honesty, I Tim. 2:2; can meet and assemble
without molestation; preach and hear the Word of God; use the
sacraments as instituted by God, and openly practice our divine
worship; for which kind privilege all subjects and Christian
believers are under great obligations, to reverently show all
gratitude to their authorities, high as well as low, to
faithfully obey them, to honestly pay customs and taxes, and to
pray earnestly and constantly to God, for the welfare of their
persons and government, in order that this, favor may descend
from us to our children and posterity. We must also greatly
thank the Lord for it, and magnify His name by a holy life,
constantly seeking, more and more, to evince virtue from our
faith, and to shine by good works in this benighted world. We
must see well to it, that we do not neglect or abuse this time
of grace, II</p>

</div><div id="362"> 

<p>Cor. 6:1; for if we employ it badly, and use liberty as an
occasion to commit sin, it will undoubtedly happen to us as it
did to Israel, who, having waxed fat and strong, departed from
God, and was therefore again cast into distress and misery,
until necessity compelled them to seek God. Deut. 32:15. Oh,
how many there are, it is to be feared, who with Demas have
loved the world again I II Tim. 4:10. How many there are, who,
having forsaken their first zeal and love, have become cold and
slothful in their devotions!</p>

<p>In former times, in the times of the cross, when men could
assemble only under peril of their lives, our zeal drove us in
the night and at unseasonable times, into nooks and corners,
and into fields and woods. How precious was then one hour which
could be employed in stirring up and establishing one another
in godliness. How the souls then thirsted and hungered after
divine food. How pleasantly then tasted the words of godliness.
Men did not ask for ingenious or flowery sermons; but hunger
devoured all that was presented. Then soul treasure was
diligently sought, since bodily possessions could give but
little comfort. Then heavenly riches were sought for above all
things; for earthly possessions were altogether insecure. But
how is it now? Temporal avocations have the preference
throughout; the oxen must first be proved, and the field be
inspected, before one can come to the heavenly marriage, Luke
14:18, 19. Simplicity is changed into pomp and ostentation.
Possessions have increased, but in the soul there is leanness.
Clothes have become costly, but the inward ornament has
perished. Love has waxed cold, and has diminished, but
contentions have increased. Do you suppose that God will always
behold this with the same longsuffering? Think ye, that He will
never once use His uplifted rod? He that did not spare Israel,
when they departed from Him; He that did not pass David by,
when he sinned through fleshly lust; He who did not spare
Solomon, when he turned his eyes to strange women, and fell
into idolatry with them, shall He spare those who, through love
of the world and the practice of sin, have so greatly departed
from Him? He often delivered Israel from one tyrant to another,
that they might learn to know Him, and reform. He chastised
them as a father, that they might not serve Him with a divided
heart, as in the time of Elijah, but that they might serve Him
alone. I Kings 18:21. He delivered Amaziah, the King of Judah,
into the hands of his enemies, because he did not serve God
with a perfect heart. II Chron. 25:2. Now, examine your heart;
whether it is not divided; whether you do not seek to serve
Christ and the world at the same time; how feebly you hear and
consider the Word of God, since your thoughts are entangled in
earthly vanities; how seldom and how slothfully the works of
godliness are practiced; and how busy and zealous you are
throughout in amassing money and property, and in feasting
yourself on pleasure. It is true, you have cast away the dumb,
wooden idols, but examine now, whether the idol of riches and
avarice is not set up in your heart. Eph. 5:5; I Tim. 6:10.
Plow through the inmost depths of your heart, and see whither
most of your inclinations and desires tend; whether, easily
satisfied here, they penetrate the clouds, and have their
conversation in heaven, or, whether digging with insatiable
desire into the earth, you seek to increase your riches and to
add house to house, and farm to farm; whether Christ in heaven
is your supreme treasure, or whether your treasure is here,
against which Christ so earnestly warns His disciples. Matt.
6:19. If you would make a test of this, study attentively your
intentions and thoughts in every occurrence; consider once, how
great a love you have for riches; how much confidence you place
in them; how greatly troubled you are with a heathenish
solicitude for the future; how anxious and despondent you are
when bad times and misfortunes threaten; and how securely you
live when sailing before the wind; how reluctant and miserable
your love for your possessions renders you in the giving of
alms; how great contention and how many lawsuits you would
rather engage in, than give up your right, and suffer damage;
how soon joy and sleep forsake you, when losses and misfortunes
befall you; how much time earthly contemplations detract from
your proper devotions; how feeble and spiritless they render
your prayers; how deep the abundance of your treasures sinks
you into sensuality; how much you are pleased with yourself on
this account, and exalt yourself above others; finally, how
painfully you part from them, and how sadly you will bid them
adieu on your deathbed. Let this serve as a test, I say, and
examine yourself, and you will discover at the same time, what
you love and serve most, and how much or little you
have"crucified the flesh with the lusts thereof." Gal. 5:24.
For, though outward persecutions now and then cease, yet every
Christian is called to sufferings and conflicts; each must take
up his cross and follow Christ; each must live, not after the
flesh, but after the Spirit; each must suffer in the flesh,
that he may cease from sin. Matt. 10:38; Rom. 8:1; I Pet. 4:1.
If you then find, that the time of freedom [from persecution]
has given liberty and room to your lusts, persecute yourself,
crucify and put yourself to death, and offer up soul and body
to God.</p>

<p>In times of persecution, words and colloquies consisted in
edifying instructions, and awakenings to godliness, magnifying
of the name of God, mutual consolations in suffering,
exhortations and incitations to constancy, and recommendations
of eternal salvation. Examine once, whether at this time you
have not lent your tongue to please frivolous, worldly men with
vain and useless talk; whether thereby you did not only not
promote godliness, but were also a hindrance and injury to it;
whether you did not defame your neighbor's good name and
reputation; and whether your</p>

</div><div id="363"> 

<p>tongue has not by lying and deceit ministered to avarice. In
times of the cross, the time was spent in godly exercises, in
consoling and edifying one another, in visiting those in
prison, and in preparing for suffering by devout meditations.
Consider once, on what you have bestowed the precious time; how
much of it has been squandered in voluptuousness and vanity;
how much has been wasted in disputes and quarrels; how much has
been lost by needless anxiety and labor; and how little has
remained for devotion. No doubt, you will find, that the
absence of the chastening rod has rendered men impious and
without reverence, and that"the lust of the flesh, the lust of
the eyes, and the pride of life" have usurped the place of
piety and humility. But the most dangerous of all is, that but
few examine themselves; but few sigh over themselves. Without
knowing it, many are poor, naked and blind, who with those of
Laodicea think that they are rich and have everything in
abundance, Rev. 3:17; but it is a wealth with which God is not
pleased, and by which the spiritual riches, which consist in
faith and love, in a living hope and a good conscience, are
diminished. See in the writings of the martyrs, how their life
was, how their suffering, how their constancy. It was the will
of God, that the children of Israel should remember the ways of
their fathers, and the instruction of wisdom concealed therein;
for they are all, ancestry and posterity, taken as one body.
Deut.8:2. Frequently it is said through the prophets: I have
brought thee out of the land of Egypt; though this had been
done to their forefathers. Micah 6:4; Ps. 81:10; H'os. 11:1.
Examine your ways, and compare them with theirs, and see
whether the love of the world has not blinded your eyes, and
led them away from God. Many, when they could not use the
world, turned of necessity to God, as their nearest refuge; but
as soon as a little breathing time set in, they again began to
lean towards the world; the parents became rich, the children
luxrious and wanton; the world caressed them,' and in course of
time they became respected and lifted up; the.reproach of the
cross was relinquished, and the honor of this world stepped
into its place. And this, in tilc first church was the reason
why God permitted a most awful persecution to come in the time
of Emperor Diocletian, that His children might be chastised
thereby, who already began to join in with the common world.
Eus., lib. 8, cap. 1. Hence, we must see well to it, that we do
not incur like guilt, lest there come upon us what came upon
theirs; for no one fares worse in such times, than he who has
not made good use of his time; such an one will then be visited
with woe, distress and misery; but to them that love God, all
things work together for good; they are purified and tried by
the refining fire; hence it is necessary that God at times
purge His threshingfloor with His fan, that the tares may not
get the upperhand, to its own destruction. But we only have to
ask His divine goodness, to chastise us as a father, and.draw
us by His love, moving our hearts and minds to Himward, in
order that we may lead a godly and holy life, in all love,
peaceableness, kindness, and long-suffering; not easily
complaining of or grudging against one another, but bearing in
patience one another's infirmities, and bettering each other by
good instructions; fleeing and avoiding all offenses,
contention and dissension, separations, and,schisms, which
cause insufferable and damnable discord; striving for peace;
and seeking to heal, and restore to unity, quiet and peace,
that which is broken and ruined, rent and torn asunder by the
subtlety of the devil, and blind ignorance, and scattered into
various factions, to the great offense and stumblingblock of
many. If we do this, we shall cause the blessing and presence
of God to be with us. Col. 3:12; I Pet. 4:8; James 5:9.</p>

<p>In the meantime, let us constantly adhere to God, always
pray for an increase of wisdom and divine knowledge, and run
with patience the race that is set before us, looking unto
Jesus, the author and finisher of our faith, Heb. 12:1, 2; for
we have the same conflict which David had in his time, and job,
and all the prophets, and Christ and His apostles, together
with all the pious followers in the first church, as also
before and in our time. They all had to overcome the world; so
de we; they all had to deny themselves; so do we; one crown is
to be gained, and the same kingdom is to be inherited. Heb.
12:28. The times also, are just the same; but the different
life makes them different; however, all inequality must
ultimately merge in the equality of God. In order to make His
followers partakers of this equality and unity, Christ prayed,
that they might be one with Him and the Father. John 17:20.
This was also the sole aim of the apostles; to this, as the
eternal, supreme treasure, they exhorted every one;"For in
Christ Jesus neither circumcision availeth anything, nor
uncircumcision, but a new creature. And as many as walk
according to this rule, peace be on them, and upon the Israel
of God. Amen." Gal. 6:15, 16.</p>

<p class="c8">Written out of love, to edification and
amendment.</p>

</div><div id="364"> 

<br />

<h1>THE BLOODY THEATER, OR MARTYRS MIRROR OF THE ANABAPTISTS OR DEFENSELESS CHRISTIANS</h1>

<h2>who baptized only upon Confession of Faith, and
who suffered and died for the testimony of Jesus, their Saviour, in the sixteenth
and seventeenth centuries, that is, from A. D. 1500 to A. D. 1660<br />
Being an Enlargement of
the preceding <i>Martyrs Mirror,</i> augmented from many authentic
Chronicles, Memoirs and Testimonies; together with an Account of the Holy
Baptism, and other Articles of Divine Worship practiced in those
times.</h2> 

<h2>AN ACCOUNT OF THE HOLY BAPTISM IN THE SIXTEENTH CENTURY</h2> 

<h2>SUMMARY OF BAPTISM IN THE SIXTEENTH CENTURY</h2> 

<p>[The controversy of the so-called clergy the cause, in this
century, that the Anabaptists increased the more, which forms
the beginning of this account.</p>

<p>In the meantime, the difference is shown, between the old
Waldenses and the apostate Hussites, respecting the article of
holy baptism.</p>

<p>The Waldenses in Hungary were now, in the year 1507, greatly
persecuted; concerning whom it is stated, that they led an
innocent life; and it is also declared that in their
confession, which they delivered this year, as well as in their
defense, in the year 1508, nothing at all is said about infant
baptism.</p>

<p>Ludovicus Vives is introduced, for the year 1521, who,
commenting on Augustine, says: That formerly the adults alone
were admitted to baptism, and that even in his time said
practice was still maintained in some cities of Italy.</p>

<p>Two articles of the old Waldenses are related, one of which
is against the pope, the other on holy baptism.</p>

<p>For the year 1540, mention is made of the churches in
Thessalonica, who were said to have remained unchanged in faith
from the time of the apostles, and agree with the Anabaptists.
From two different authors particulars corroborating the matter
of said Thessalonian churches are given; from the testimony of
other writers and credible memoirs.</p>

<p>In a note it is shown, that in Thessalonica alone the
Christians have more than thirty churches, or meetinghouses,
while the Turks have only three.</p>

<p>D. Vicecomes mentions the time when the Thessalonian
Christians administered baptism.</p>

<p>We then proceed to some confessors who lived and were put to
death in the time of our fathers; some good and wholesome
testimonies regarding this article, left by them as Thomas van
Imbrmck, A. D. 1558; Jacob de Roore, A. D. 1569; John Wouters
van Kuyck, A. D. 1572, Christian Gastayger, A. D. 1586;
Bartholomew Panten, A. D. 1592. Finally, about A. D. 1600, an
entire confession of faith follows, such as has been believed
and practiced for many years, by those called Mennists.</p>

<p>With this we conclude the whole account of holy baptism and
Christian worship in those times.]</p>

<p>It is now our purpose to fulfill the promise we made in the
preceding part, and to this end have come here, namely, to show
also in this century, that the distinguishing mark of the
believers, that is, baptism according to the institution of
Christ, was at this time also correctly taught, practiced and
maintained, by those who may be called orthodox believers;
notwithstanding said article had to suffer much opposition,
violence and molestation, and this not only from the papists
(who, however, have nearly always opposed it), but also from
other persuasions who had abhorred the doctrine of the papists
in many other points, and with fear and terror</p>

</div><div id="365"> 

<p>had fled from the Roman church, as from a confused
Babel.</p>

<p>However, all this, instead of obscuring the truth, tended
only to illuminate and glorify it the more, just as gold when
contrasted with copper, the mountain's height with the deep
valley, and the light of day with the darkness of night, can be
distinguished the more plainly; also the praiseworthy
commended, and the contemptible contemned. This was the case at
that time, not only with the assailed truth, but also with
those who defended it, as shall be related and proven in the
sequel.</p>

<p><i>Jacob Mehrning's History of Baptism,</i> making mention
of the sixteenth century, that is the time from A. D. 1500
until A. D. 1600, begins with these words: <i>Page</i> 772"At
this time there arose, principally in Germany, a most severe
persecution against the old Waldenses and .their followers,
through the violent controversy of the, so-called clergy, and
the disputations waged against them by the pens of the
learned." [The Waldenses] in consequence of this, however,
gained far more Anabaptists (namely Baptists); than there had
ever before, in any country, been seen.</p>

<p>This indicates that the old orthodox Waldenses,
notwithstanding the severe persecutions, existed also at this
time, yea, insomuch that now they increased more than ever
before.</p>

<p>But this was also the century in .whichLuther in Germany,
Zwingli in Switzerland, and afterwards Calvin in France, began
to reform the Roman chLr,-h; and to deny, oppose and contend
with the authority of God's holy Word against the supposed
power of the Roman Pope, and many papal superstitions, however,
in order to avoid too great dissatisfaction, as it seems, they
remained in the matter of infant baptism, in agreement with the
Roman church, though they abandoned many incidents which the
papists observe at the baptism of infants, such as the salt,
spittle, exorcism, and the like.</p>

<p>They also have retained with the papists, the swearing of
oaths, the office of secular authority, war against enemies,
and sometimes also against each other, etc., of which things
the old Waldenses had purified themselves, and would have no
communion with any who would practice these things. Hence, we
will leave them, and turn to our fellow believers.</p>

<p>It is true, that already before the beginning of this
century, some of the Waldenses had united with the Hussites,
apparently in the confidence, that with the doctrine, these
would also follow the meekness of their former teacher, John
Huss. But when said Hussites would retain infant baptism, and
avenge the death of their teacher, yea, began to wage a bloody
war against those who had put him to death, those who had
united with them found themselves greatly deceived, and left
them, not daring to trust their salvation with such people;
some, however, though few, remained with them. Thus the
Waldenses returned for the most part to their old brethren, but
the Hussites were received by the Lutherans, Zwinglians and
Calvinists, who, with them approved of infant baptism and
war.</p>

<p>But since, some Waldenses had united with the Hussites
before the apostasy of the latter, and some though few, .had
still remained with them, it came that said Hussites received,
though erroneously, the name of Waldenses. Hence it originated,
that they had a mixed confession of faith, which was partly
conformable to the old confession of the Waldenses, and party
adulterated with innovations or human institutions. For
example, the article of the holy baptism of these Hussites
reads as follows, "The faith which God has given us, constrains
us to believe and confess such things respecting baptism, which
is the first sacrament</p>

<p>Whoever, now, in adult age, has become believing through the
hearing of the Word of God, by which he; being regenerated and
enlightened in his soul, has received power, such an one is
bound to be baptized in the name of the Father, the Son, and
the Holy Ghost, into the unity of the holy church, by an
external washing of water, in token of his inward purification
obtained through faith."</p>

<p>(So far this article accords with the confession of,the old
Waldenses; ,but what follows it, is held to have been added by
said Hussites. ), "This our confession extends also to infants, who, according
to the command of the apostles, as Dionysius writes, must be
baptized, and afterwards, through the wise direction of their
sponsors, who are taught in the law of Christ, be guided, or
urged and trained to the life of faith, that is, to worthily
practice the faith."</p>

<p>We see here, a great departure of these Hussites, who have
added to the old rule of the Waldenses, which is confirmed by
the authority of holy Scripture (namely, to baptize upon
faith), a new rule, namely, to baptize also infants, and for
proof of this, adduce not the testimony of Christ or His holy
apostles, but of one Dionysius, who never was an apostle or
teacher of Christ, but a fallible man.</p>

<p>And still, the preacher Mellinus would make the readers of
his book believe, 2d <i>book, page 614,</i> Col: 3, that this
last part was also the confession of the Waldenses; but the
contrary is evident, as previously stated; yea, according to
his own account, <i>fol:</i> 446, col. 1, the Waldenses, A. D.
1544, forty years after the Hussites, whom he calls Bohemian
brethren, made the above article, issued a confession and
delivered it in the parliament of the King of France, in.
which, where speaking of baptism, they make no mention at all
of any baptizing of infants; but the work of the Hussites,
according to the account of said preacher, is said to have
originated A. D. 1504. Compare <i>fol.</i> 611, col. 1, with
<i>f al. 614,</i> Col. 3.</p>

<p>A. D. 1507-"In this year," writes P. J. Twisck,"the Vaudois,
Waldenses, or believers were cruelly persecuted in Hungary, and
delivered the confession of their faith, together with an
apology, to</p>

</div><div id="366"> 

<p>Uladislaus, King of Bohemia, refuting the calumnies of their
enemies, and proving that they had not separated from the Roman
church without good reasons. Of these people, papistic writers
themselves confess, that they led an innocent and pious life,
though they nevertheless cruelly sought to kill and exterminate
them." <i>Chron., page</i> 930, col. 2, from <i>Henr. Boxh.,
fol.</i> 27.</p>

<p>NOTE.--Touching the confession which the afore-mentioned
Waldenses, A. D. 1507, delivered to King Uladislaus, as well as
their defense which they delivered A. D. 1508, nothing at all
is therein said of infant baptism, though that would have been
the proper time to explain themselves in this respect. See A.
<i>Mell., fol.</i> 616, col. 1-4, and <i>fol.</i> 617, col.
1-3. As to their confession of the year 1504, which was
corrupted or adulterated with human institutions, by the
Hussites, we have already spoken.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1521.-One Ludovicus Vives, of Valencia,
commenting on the words of Augustine, in the 27th <i>chapter
of</i> the 1st <i>book</i> of the <i>City of God:</i> With what
admonition we address the baptized, says"That no one be misled
by this passage, [I would state, that] no one was formerly
admitted to holy baptism, save he who had attained his years,
and understood himself what the holy water signified, and
desired to be washed with it; yea, when he desired it a second
time or oftener."</p>

<p>Said Vives, in the same place, further declares, "I
understand that in some cities of Italy the ancient custom is,
to a great extent, still observed."</p>

<p>By this he indicates, that at, as well as before his time,
many there did not practice infant baptism; which is the
purpose for which we have adduced this passage., "These apparently were," says H. Montanus, who has noted
this,"a remnant from the Waldenses, who were also scattered
into different parts of Italy." <i>Nietigh., page 89.</i></p>

<p>He then states, that in the year 1544 they delivered their
confession of faith to Francis I, King of France, but that the
following year, said king, through Minerius, miserably fell
upon and exterminated them, in accordance with the sentence
pronounced against them five years previously, at Aix, in the
court of Provence, not far from Italy.</p>

<p>Their faith is further thus described, "That they, according
to their ancient custom, did not ,recognize the Pope of Rome,
and had always had a pure religion."</p>

<p>Concerning baptism, they professed, "That it is an external
visible sign, which signifies to us the renewing of the Spirit,
and the mortifying of the members." This confession, in
substance, fully agrees with the one which we previously
related from jean Paul Perrin, as also, with what Reinerius
admonishes, among the articles of their confession, as these
were in his time, saying, "That they deemed infant baptism
useless." <i>Mont., Nietigh., page 90.</i> We could expatiate
and give more particulars, touching the Waldenses, in
confirmation of the faith which they had in common with us, as
also, that they confessed said faith until the times of the
last martyrs, yea, also, that some of those martyrs proceeded
from them; but as it is not our purpose fro fill this book with
words, but only to give the pith of the matter, which we think
we have done, we will leave it as it is referring it to the
judgment of the intelligent and impartial reader.</p>

<p>Before we leave this, we would state that mention is made,
in this century, not only of the Waldenses, but also of certain
churches in Thessalonica, in Greece, which are declared to have
remained unchanged in faith from the time of Christ, and to
agree in faith and practice with the Anabaptistic churches, in
Switzerland. I will quote the account <i>verbatim,</i> which I
have found in regard to this; in a certain tract entitled:
<i>The Spectacles, by which the Anabaptists of one faith may
see, etc., by a lover of the truth, J. S., printed at Harlem,
by Hans Passchiers, van Wesbusch, A. D.</i> 1630.</p>

<p>In the preface, page 10, we read, "Since, my beloved, all the
truly pious have a sincere joy and the greatest delight [to
know], that many pious people are found upon earth, it has
seemed good to me, to acquaint you with a brief testimony that
has fallen into my hands:How, in the year 1540, or a little
before, certain persons were brought captive by the Turks, from
Moravia, to Thessalonica, in Turkey, and sold as slaves; which
slaves there became acquainted with the (Thessalonian)
Christians. Observing their life and conversation, they said to
these Thessalonians, that in Moravia there lived a people who
were like them in life and conversation, and were called
Anabaptists; which kindled in the Thessalonians a zeal to
examine the truth of the matter; and it further happened, as
the testimony states," etc.</p>

<p>NOTE.-Besides what we have noted concerning the churches at
Thessalonica, Balthasar Lydius gives this account, "We will
first speak of the Greek churches, who, in great numbers, are
under the dominion of the Grand Turk; for in the city of
Thessalonica, by the Turks now called Salonick, the Christians
or Greeks have more than thirty churches, while the Turks, on
the other hand, have only three; and so it is in other places
in the vicinity. These churches do not recognize the pope as
the general head of the church. This appears from the book of
Nilus. <i>Balth 4ydii, 3. Tract. of the Waldenses, cent;. 33,
eol. 1. Nilus de Primatu Papa, p. 48, 51 edit., Wechel, A. D.,
1608.</i></p>

<p>On page 42 of the book referred to above, we read: Brief
account how through some Moravians who had been captured by
the Turks, and had come to Thessalonica, in Turkey, the
Christians at Thessaloniea obtained information that in Moravia
there lived fellow believers of theirs, who were there called
Anabaptists; and how, in order to as-</p>

</div><div id="367"> 

<p>certain the truth of the matter, they sent three
of their brethren to Moravia, in Germany., "I, the undersigned, testify that in Moravia there lived
with me, for the space of three years, a man of our brethren,
about a hundred years old named Leonard Knar, who related to me
that in his time, when he was a servant in the common house of
the common church at Popitz, under the stewart, Hans Fuhrman,
three brethren of the church of Thessalonica were sent to
Germany to inquire after their fellow believers, who, as they
had learned from the prisoners, as stated above, were living in
Moravia., "They  first came to Nickelsburg, on the frontier of Hungary,
where they went to a priest and inquired after this people. He
entered a carriage and rode with these three men to Pausrom, to
those who are there called Hutterites, and in the Netherlands,
Moravians., "Having well examined their life and conversation, they
discussed with them, in the Latin language, in which they were
well versed all the articles of the faith, but found that in
three principal articles they did not accord; namely, first in
<i>shunning,</i> as this article was maintained by the
Hutterites; secondly, in the <i>community of</i> goods, which
virtually consists with them more in <i>dominion and</i>
servitude, than in equality; thirdly, that they withhold from
those who fall away from their communion and leave them the
property which they brought in, on account of which these three
men parted from them with tears in their eyes, because they had
performed such a difficult and laborious journey in vain., "The same priest then brought them in same place (Pausrom),
to the Schwitzer church, who derive their name from Hans
Schwitzer, who, through one of their brethren, named John Peck
(who, with Hans Fuhrman and twelve other persons, had lain in
prison for nine years, in the castle Passau on the Danube, in
Bavaria, for the testimony of the faith), discussed in Latin
all the articles of their faith. They agreed well in all
points, on account of which they being mutually filled with
great joy, acknowledged each other as dear brethren, and in
token thereof, commemorated together the Lord's Supper, with
great gladness, <i>confessing themselves</i> the true church of
God. They stated further that the church of God at Thessalonica
had remained unchanged in faith from the time of the apostles,
and that they still preserved in good <i>condition the</i>
letters which the apostle Paul wrote to them with his own
hands., "All this having taken place, they parted in peace, and
having commended each other with tears and the kiss of love,
into the keeping of the Lord, the brethren journeyed back to
Thessalonica., "One of them who was a tailor by trade, left his shears as a
memento in the church at Pausrom., "This history is not only <i>known to</i> me, but is
generally known, not only in Moravia, but also in the upper
Palatinate." he father of this Leonard Knar, who saw and
related all this; was elder among the Anabaptists there who now
consist of two principal divisions, namely the Hutterites, here
in the Netherlands called Moravians, and the Schwitzers here in
the Netherlands called Germans, but who were then yet one
people. This Elder Leonard Knar ministered to these people in
baptism, the Supper and intercessions according to the doctrine
of the apostles.</p>

<p>As Leonard was well acquainted with John Peck, the latter
orally related to Leonard all that he had discussed with the
brethren from Thessalonica.</p>

<p>We mentioned before, that Hans Fuhrman and John Peck,
together with twelve other persons, lay imprisoned for <i>nine
years</i> in the castle of Passau. From this long confinement
they were released through bail furnished by a certain lord of
Jamits, who traveled thirty-six leagues to release the
prisoners by becoming <i>bondsman for</i> them. He had in his
town Jamits, a large society of these people living under his
protection.</p>

<p>To the above account the following testimony is given,
subscribed to .in these words:, "By me, Jacob Meyster, resident at Amsterdam, fled from
Moravia, to Poland, A. D. 1620; thence A. D. 1626, to Stettin,
in Pomerania, and in the year 1627, to Amsterdam. I acknowledge
that this account of Leonard Knar is as related."</p>

<p>Of these things, Jacob Mehrning, of Holstein, gives this
account, "Thus we have <i>information,</i> that even at the
present day there are brethren and Christians at Thessalonica,
who agree with the Mennists in all articles of religion, also
in baptism, two of whom were yet in the time of our fathers,
with the brethren in Moravia, and then also in the Netherlands,
and communed with the brethren, who expressly declared that
they still preserved in good <i>condition, at</i> Thessalonica,
the originals of St. Paul's two epistles to the Thessalonians.
Likewise, that many of their brethren were still living,
scattered here and there in Ethiopia, Greece and other oriental
countries, as well as other Christians, who, like them, were
preserved by God, and remained in the same doctrine, and the.
true practice of baptism, constantly from the beginning of the
apostles to this time. Bapt. Hist., p. 739.</p>

<p>D. Vicecomes, lib. 1, cap. 23, quotes from Nicephorus
Callistus, that in Thessalia baptism was administered only at
Easter; on which account many died without baptism.</p>

<p>This harmonizes quite well with the foregoing; namely, that
the Thessalonian churches were not accustomed, or at least did
not deem it necessary to baptize infants, seeing they waited
with baptism a whole year; on the other hand, those who
consider infant baptism necessary, frequently dare not postpone
it one month,- one week, yea, sometimes not one day, on account
of the uncertainty of the infant's life; so that they appoint
no definite time for infant baptism, as also, if necessity
require it, no</p>

</div><div id="368"> 

<p>definite persons; so much that the papists as also the
Lutherans allow not only priests or teachers, but also laymen,
yea, women to baptize, so that no child may die unbaptized.
<i>Anthon. Jac. Babel der Kinderdoopers, printed A. D.</i>
1626, p. 107, <i>8th chapter, quest. 5, from Bellarm de
Baptism, col.</i> 307.</p>

<p>But that the Thessalonian churches had the custom of
baptizing only on Easter, that is, once a year came as may be
inferred, because they deemed it necessary first to instruct
the persons for a long time, almost a year, and to teach them
the faith, before they might be baptized; as has been shown
from <i>Rupert Tuiciensis,</i> for the year 1124.</p>

<p>NOTE.-Notwithstanding we might herewith close our account of
Holy Baptism, since not only this article, but all that further
belongs to it, has been sufficiently shown, and the known
martyrs of our faith and their confessions have been plainly
presented in our old book of the martyrs long before this time;
yea, already in the year 1524, we nevertheless, in order to
satisfy, if this be possible, the critical, will proceed to
bring this article to the end of this century, in which the
confessions of the martyrs will render us no small service, as
will appear.</p>

<h2>CONFESSION OF THOMAS VAN IMBROECK, CONCERNING
BAPTISM</h2> 

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1558.-At this time a God-fearing and pious hero
of Jesus Christ, named Thomas van Imbroeck, made a most
excellent and explicit confession of Holy Baptism, as also a
refutation of the opponents, which he delivered to the lords of
Cologne, where he was imprisoned for the faith. It reads as
follows:.</p>

<p>I believe and confess that there is a Christian baptism,
which must take place externally and internally; internally
with the Holy Ghost and with fire, externally with water; in
the name of the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost.</p>

<p>Internal baptism is imparted by Christ to the penitent, as
John the Baptist said, "I indeed baptize you with water unto
repentance: but he that cometh after me is mightier than I;
whose shoes I am not worthy to bear; he shall baptize you with
the Holy Ghost, and with fire." Matt. 3:11; Mark 1:8.</p>

<p>Christ confirms these words when He says to His
disciples,"That they should not depart from Jerusalem, but wait
for the promise of the Father, which, saith he, ye have heard
of me. For John truly baptized with water; but ye shall be
baptized with the Holy Ghost not many days hence." And this
promise was fulfilled on the day of Pentecost. Acts 1:4, 5; 2,
etc.</p>

<p>Thus was also the house of Cornelius baptized when they
believed what Peter spake: they received the Holy Ghost, and
all spake with tongues, and magnified God. Acts 10:44, 46.</p>

<p>But the external baptism of water, which is a witness of the
spiritual baptism, and indication of rue repentance, and a sign
of faith in Jesus Christ, is administered, by the command of
the Almighty Father, and His Son Jesus Christ, and the Holy
Ghost, and in the name of the only God, by a true servant of
the Lord, to those who have repented and reformed, believe the
Gospel,* confess their faith and desire baptism;, willingly
offer themselves up to God, and yield themselves servants unto
righteousness, yea, to the service of God, and the communion of
Jesus Christ and all the saints.</p>

<p>This is fully comprehended and contained in the words which
Christ speaks to His disciples, "Go ye therefore, and teach all
nations, baptizing them in the name of the Father, and of the
Son, and of the Holy Ghost: teaching them to observe all things
whatsoever I have commanded you." Matt. <i>28:19,</i> 20. In
Mark we read thus, "Go ye into all the world, and preach the
Gospel to every creature. He that believeth and is baptized
shall be saved; but he that believeth not shall be damned."
Mark <i>16:15, 16.</i></p>

<p>These words of Christ fully comprise the ordination and
institution of the Christian baptism, and all that pertains to
it; for Christ, who is the eternal wisdom of the Father, has
expressly and completely thus commanded it. Now, as He is the
Light and the Saviour of the world, we find in this command,
that teaching and believing must precede baptism. John
<i>8:</i>12; 3:17.</p>

<p>The Scriptures cannot be broken, neither are we to take away
from, or add to, the Word of God; nay, not even the smallest
tittle or letter of the Gospel may be changed. Hence, the
ordinance of the Lord, respecting baptism must remain
unaltered; for it is the Word of God, which abideth for ever.
Deut. 4:2; Matt. 5:18; John 10:35.</p>

<p>Hence, the words of Christ declare, that teaching must take
place before and after baptism, in order that the person
baptized may use diligence to observe, after baptism, the
Gospel (which was presented to him before baptism), and all
things commanded him; for he is no more lord over himself; but,
as a bride surrenders herself to her bridegroom, so he, after
receiving baptism, surrenders himself to Christ, and loses his
will, is resigned in all things, without name, without will,
but leaving the name to Christ, and letting Him reign in him.
For this is the signification of baptism, that the Christian's
life is nothing but pure dying and suffering; because we are
like unto the image of Christ, and baptized with Him, must die
and suffer, if we would reign and live with Him. Rom. 6:4.</p>

<p>With this ordinance of Christ, accord also the apostles, as
faithful stewards and dispensers of the manifold grace of God;
for thus did Peter and the other disciples preach the Gospel at
Jerusalem, and they that heard it, were pricked in their heart
by the Word, and said unto Peter and the rest of the
apostles;"Men and brethren, what shall we do?</p>

<br /><cite>* And Philip said, If thou believest with all
thine heart, thou mayest. Acts 8:37.</cite> 

</div><div id="369"> 

<p>Then Peter said unto them: Repent and be baptized every one
of you in the name of Jesus Christ for the remission of sins,
and ye shall receive the gift of the Holy Ghost" (Acts 2:37,
38). Thus did also Philip, when he expounded the Scripture to
the eunuch. And the latter, when he had accepted it, said, "What
doth hinder me to be baptized? Philip answered: If thou
believest with all thine heart, thou mayest." Acts 8:35-37.
Thus also those of Samaria were baptized, when they believed
the words of Philip. Verse 12.</p>

<p>Again, when Peter preached Christ to the house of Cornelius,
and spake the word of life, the Holy Ghost fell on all them
that heard the word."Then said Peter: Can any man forbid water,
that these should not be baptized, which have received the Holy
Ghost as well as we? And he commanded them to be baptized in
the name of the Lord." Acts 10:44, 47, 48.</p>

<p>Thus, Paul also found certain disciples at Ephesus, to whom
he said, "Have ye received the Holy Ghost, since ye believed?
They answered: We have not so much as heard whether.there be
any Holy Ghost. Then said Paul: Unto what then were ye
baptized? They said: Unto John's baptism. Paul said: John
verily baptized with the baptism of repentance, saying unto the
people, that they should believe on him which should come after
him, that is, on Christ Jesus. When they heard this, they were
baptized in the name of the Lord Jesus, " So we read in the 19th
chapter of Acts.</p>

<p>Thus also Paul himself, when he had been prostrated on the
way, by the Lord, and had heard at Damascus, by the command of
the Lord, from Ananias, what he should do; had again received
his sight, and was filled with the Holy Ghost, in short, had
become a chosen vessel and fit instrument, was baptized, and
called upon the name of the Lord; as Luke writes, Acts
9:18.</p>

<p>From these and other passages it is evident, that the
apostles first taught, and that from teaching follow repentance
and faith. For, how shall they believe, says Paul, without
hearing. Faith cometh by hearing, and hearing by the Word of
God. Rom. 10:17. Hence, penitent faith is confessed and, so to
speak, sealed by Christian baptism. For, after baptism, a
constantly good and godly life should follow;* this is the true
ordinance of the Lord Jesus Christ, and His apostles, as you
may read everywhere throughout the Acts of the Apostles.</p>

<p>Lastly, as the apostles established the church of God
through the Gospel, so they all unanimously declare in their
epistles the aforesaid foundation of Christ. For, thus says
Paul to the Romans, "Know ye not, that so many of us as were baptized into Jesus
Christ were baptized into his death? Therefore we are buried
with him by baptism into death: that like as Christ was raised
up from the dead by the glory of the Father, even so we also
should walk in newness of life. For if we have been</p>

<br /><cite>* For as many of you as have been baptized into
Christ have put on Christ. Gal. 3:27. planted together in the
likeness of his death, we shall be also in the likeness of his
resurrection</cite> 

<p>knowing this, that our old man is crucified with him, that
the body of sin might be destroyed, that henceforth we should
not serve sin. For he that is dead is freed from sin" (Rom.
6:3-7).</p>

<p>With these words, Paul tells us what the baptism of
believers signifies, namely, the dying of the flesh, or
mortifying of the old Adam, the burying of sin, the putting off
of the sinful flesh, and the resurrection of the new man and
life; and this for this reason: since Christ died for our sins,
was buried, and rose from the dead for our justification, and
we, through the spirit of faith, have been incorporated or
grafted into Him, and hence, have become entitled to the merits
of His death, yea, are made partakers of all that is His, and
thus, in and through hope, are confirmed in His fellowship
(unto which we are called through grace); therefore we must
also, for His name's sake, die unto sin,* bury it, and live
unto righteousness, that we may be a true branch on the
vine.</p>

<p>In this manner the apostle Paul speaks also to the
Colossians, "Ye are complete in him, which is the head of all
principality and power: in whom also ye are circumcised with
the circumcision made without hands, in putting off the body,
of the sins of the flesh by the circumcision of Christ: buried
with him in baptism, wherein also ye are risen with him through
the faith of the operation of God, who hath raised him from the
dead. And you, being dead in your sins and the uncircumcision
of your flesh, hath he quickened together with him." Chap. 2,
verses 10-13, compared with Eph. 2:4-6.</p>

<p>These words, in the first place, declare, that circumcision
is not a figure of baptism, but of the circumcision of Christ,
Which is not done on the foreskin of the flesh, but on that of
the heart, not with hands, nor with a knife of stone, but
without hands, through the Word of God, in the Spirit.</p>

<p>These words of Paul sufficiently indicate, that in baptism
the past life must be buried with Christ, and, through faith,
rise to a new life; for the outward sign alone is of no value
in the sight of God but faith, the new birth, a true Christian
life-by these, man is united with God, incorporated into Christ
Jesus, and becomes a partaker of the Holy Ghost.</p>

<p>Hence, external baptism does not conduce tc salvation, if
the internal baptism is wanting, name ly, the transformation
and renewing of the mind Once more Paul says to the
Galatians, "For ye arf all the children of God by faith in
Christ Jesus For as many of you as have been baptized into
Christ have put on Christ" (Gal. 3:26, 27).</p>

<p>I hope that my lords will reflect a little on then excellent
and explicit words; for when viewer aright, they are easily
comprehended. Even as</p>

<p>man that is naked, hides himself and would not b~ seen
because he is ashamed of his nakedness; bu</p>

<br /><cite>* For ye are dead, and your life is hid with
Christ in God Col. 3:3.</cite> 

</div><div id="370"> 

<p>when he has covered his shame, he comes forth without
hesitation. So it was also with Adam; when God called him, he
hid himself, and said, "Lord, I am naked." Nevertheless, he had covered himself
with a fig-leaf; but it availed him nothing; for the Lord could
well see his shame, that is, his sin. Gen. 3.</p>

<p>But when he knew himself, God clothed him with skins, which
signified the sign of .grace of Christ. Now when he had on the
skin, his nakedness was no longer seen. So it is also with
Christians; when they have put on the coat of skins (Christ),
our sin is seen no longer, and the garment which we have on is
manifest to all. Compare Gen. 3:21 with Gal. 3:27. Therefore,
he that is baptized aright, has put on Christ, and nothing is
seen on him, but Christ and the life of Christ. Thus Paul says
to the Ephesians, "Christ loved the church, and gave himself for
it; that he might sanctify and cleanse it with the washing of
water by the word" (Eph. 5:25, 26).</p>

<p>Here we plainly perceive, that the washing of water is
joined to the word; for no one is cleansed by the washing of
water, but by the word; as the Lord says, "Now ye are clean
through the word which I have spoken unto you" (John 15:3)
.</p>

<p>In another place, Paul calls baptism a washing of
regeneration, Tit. 3:5, because baptism represents
regeneration; even as circumcision is called a covenant,
because it represented a covenant. Thus also, the paschal lamb
is called pascha, that is, a passing over, though it was simply
a memorial of the passover. Thus, is baptism called a washing
of regeneration, because it belongs to the regenerated children
of God, who are born of incorruptible seed, namely, the living
Word of God, or, as James says, "Who are regenerated by the will
of God, by the word of truth." I Pet. 1:23; James 1:18.</p>

<p>Still another point is also to be considered here -that the
apostles say, We must be regenerated by the Word, that is,
through the preaching of the Gospel. But by what will those who
say that children are regenerated, prove this? since neither
preaching nor word obtains with them.</p>

<p>Finall~1, Peter says also in his epistle, "When once the
longsuffering of God waited in the days of Noah, while the ark
was a preparing, wherein few, that is, eight souls were saved
by water. The like figure whereunto even baptism doth also now
save us (not the putting away of the filth of the flesh, but
the answer of a good conscience toward God), by the
resurrection of Jesus Christ" (I Pet. 3:20, 21) .</p>

<p>From the words of Peter we perceive, that baptism is
represented by the flood, through which God punished the whole
world; but Noah, with his house, whom God deemed righteous, was
preserved in the ark from the water; even as Israel passed
dry-shod through the Red Sea, and were thus delivered from
their enemies; but Pharaoh with his entire host, was drowned in
it, so that not a single one escaped. I Cor. 10:1, 2.</p>

<p>Thus it is with all the works of God; that which is life for
the pious, is death for the ungodly, as Paul testifies with
these words, "We are unto God a sweet savour of Christ, in them
that are saved, and in them that perish: to the one we are the
savour of death unto death; and to the other the savour of life
unto life" (II Cor. 2:15, 16).</p>

<p>But in order rightly to understand the figure of the flood,
we must consider Noah as the antitype of Christ; his house the
antitype of believers; the ark, of the church; and the flood,
of baptism. For, even as Noah, in his time, was a preacher of
righteousness, so also Christ was a true preacher of
righteousness, who proceeded from God, and came into the world.
And as Noah prepared the ark, to preserve his household, so
Christ prepared the spiritual ark, namely His church, built by
the apostles, as wise master builders, to preserve His children
and His household, of whom He Himself says, "Behold, I and the children which God hath given me." And as
through the flood all flesh was destroyed and perished, so must
also, through baptism, all carnal lusts and desires be
destroyed and perish. And as only few, that is, eight souls,
were preserved in the time of Noah, so it is also with men at
this present time. Though it is proclaimed unto them, and the
light shines forth clearly, still they love darkness rather
than light; hence there are so few who truly believe, and are
translated from the past life into a spiritual life, that they
may enter into the church of Christ, and thus be baptized unto
the dying of the flesh, and the resurrection to a new life.</p>

<p>For Christ Himself says, that there are but few who find the
true way;"for many are called, but few chosen;" few believe,
and few shall be saved. Luke 1-3:24; Matt. 20:16. As also Luke
says, "Nevertheless, when the Son of man cometh, shall he find
faith on the earth?" (Luke 18:8).</p>

<p>For, noble sir, and servant of God, I appeal to you, whether
it is not now as it was in the time of Noah? They build; they
plant; they buy one field after another; they feast; they
drink; they marry, and are given in marriage; and all this
without the fear of God; and they who do this are well known,
yea, all corners of the world are full of abominations and
idolatry. May the Lord convert them ail, Amen. Luke 17:26, 27;
Matt. 24:37, 38.</p>

<p>The reason why they live without the fear of God, and
without care, is, that they have no example. They console
themselves only with this, namely: I <i>am a Christian; for 1
am baptized.</i> Thus they speak, thinking that it is
sufficient if one is only baptized; but they know little what
baptism signifies; for they have not yet drank of the living
fountain, of which Jeremiah speaks; but they drink of the wells
which they have digged themselves;"For they have forsaken the
true fountain, says the Lord" (Jer. 2:13) .</p>

</div><div id="371"> 

<p>So it is now also with baptism, as I have sufficiently shown
above, that believers only are to be baptized. But now the
command of Christ is ignored, and those who dig or devise a
well, or baptism, of their own, are received; and thus is
fulfilled what Christ says, "Thus have ye made the commandment
of God of none erect by your tradition" (Matt. 15:6).</p>

<p>Still more might be shown from the Scriptures; for Paul
writes very clearly to the Hebrews, concerning the preparation
of Christians, declaring that those who would receive this
Christian ordinance, must first learn the principles of the
Christian doctrine, namely, repentance f rom dead works, then
faith in God, and then baptism. Heb. 6:1.</p>

<p>I fear it might become tedious to my noble lord and servant
of God; hence I will make it as brief as possible.</p>

<p>Now, since there are many who believe that children that die
without baptism are damned, as also the priests maintain, we
will, by the grace of God, give a brief answer to our
opponents, so that my lords may be relieved on this point</p>

<h2>DEFENSE AGAINST THE OPPONENTS BY THOMAS PAN IMBROECK</h2> 

<p><i>In the first place,</i> our opponents say, it is writ-
ten, "Suffer little children to come unto me; for of such is the
kingdom of heaven" (Matt.. 19:14). Now, if they have the
promise, why should they not also receive baptism, which is
less than the promise?</p>

<p>Answer.-We believe and, confess that infants are saved on
account of the promise; but that salvation depends on baptism,
we do not confess; for when Christ promised the children the
kingdom of God, they were not baptized, nor did He baptize
them, but He embraced them, and spoke kindly to, or blessed,
them. Mark 9:36, 37. Christ also states the reason why the
children are acceptable to God, since He sets them as examples
for adults, and admonishes us, that we should be like them, for
thus He says to His disciples, "Verily I say unto you, except ye
be converted, and become as little, children, ye shall not
enter into the kingdom of heaven. Whosoever therefore shall
humble himself as this little child, the same is the greatest
in the , kingdom of heaven" (Matt. 18:3, 4) .</p>

<p>Hence, since we are admonished to become as children, it is
incontrovertible, that as long as they remain in a state of
innocence, God holds them guiltless, and no sin is imputed to
them; and although they are of a sinful nature, partaking of
the nature of Adam, there still remains something in them which
is pleasing to God, namely, innocence and humility; however,
they are saved only through the grace of Christ.</p>

<p>But if some condemn infants, if they die without baptism, it
is a despising of the blood of Christ; for the sin of Adam and
of the whole world, is reconciled through the sacrifice of
Christ, and no sin from Adam is imputed to children; how then
can children be damned?</p>

<p>Who will accuse the children, for whom Christ shed His
blood? Who will condemn them, to whom Christ has promised the
kingdom of God? Who will deny the holy Scriptures, which
declare so emphatically, that the sin of Adam and of the whole
world has been taken away; the handwriting of the law, which
was against us, blotted out, and nailed to the cross, and that
grace has abounded over sin, and.the life of Christ conquered
death?</p>

<p>Hence, he who says that children are condemned, or accuses
them on account of original sin, denies the death and blood of
Christ. For, if the children are condemned because of Adam's
death, then Christ died in vain, Adam's guilt is still upon us,
and not reconciled through Christ, and grace has not abounded
over sin through Christ. God forbid.</p>

<p>For the grace of God has richly appeared to all men. Tit.
2:11; Rom. 5:18. All malediction, curse, and the sin of the
whole world have been taken away through Christ,.. and as
adults are saved through faith, so children.are saved through
their innocence; 'but all through grace.</p>

<p>An answer, then, remains yet to be given, why, if they are
saved, they should not be baptized.</p>

<p>In the first place, because we have no command from Christ
for it. Abraham had received a command from the Lord, to
circumcize all males on the eighth day. Now, he had received no
command respecting females, nor did he follow his own opinion,
but, according to the, command of God, caused only the male
children to be circumcised; and circumcision was the sign of
the covenant which God had established with Abraham; and still,
the women were included in the covenant as well as the men.</p>

<p>And afterwards, when Israel was in the wilderness, and had
grossly signed against the Lord, so that God said, they should
not enter into the promised land, and this on account of their
unbelief, He (the Lord) said: But your children which now know
neither good nor evil, they shall possess it.</p>

<p>Now, if the children, whom the Lord had commanded to be
circumcised on the eighth day,* obtained mercy from Him, and He
promised to give them the land, and that they should possess
it, how much more should now His grace be upon the children for
whom Christ died?</p>

<p>In <i>the second place,</i> our, opponents say, that the
Lord said to Nicodemus;"Except a man be born of water and of
the Spirit, he cannot enter into the kingdom of God" (John 3:5)
. From this, they say, it follows, that no one can enter into
the kingdom of God, except he be baptized with water.</p>

<p>Answer.-These words of Christ must not be understood with
reference to children; for the passage which the Lord spake to
Nicodemus, namely: Verily, verily, I say unto thee, except a
man be</p>

<br /><cite>* From this our opponents, nevertheless, form an
argument, which they, though without foundation, bring against
us.</cite> 

</div><div id="372"> 

<p>born from above, he cannot see the kingdom of God, declares
differently; for here we hear that Christ presented to
Nicodemus regeneration, which takes place only through the Word
of God, as has above, in my confession, been sufficiently
explained; and then Nicodemus said: How can a man, when he is
old, enter the second time into his mother's womb, and be born
again?</p>

<p>Mark, he says, when he is old;* from which we well perceive,
that the Lord did not speak of children. And thereupon Christ
says, "Except a man be born of water and of the Spirit, he
cannot enter into the kingdom of God."</p>

<p>That this is not spoken of children, the following words
prove, namely, "That which is born of the flesh is flesh; and
that which is born of the Spirit is spirit. Marvel not that I
said unto thee, Ye must be born again. The wind bloweth where
it listeth, and thou hearest the sound thereof, but canst not
tell whence it cometh, and whither it goeth: so is every one
that is born of the Spirit."**</p>

<p>By these words Christ indicates that the regenerated man
becomes spiritual, and is born of the Spirit, and of a
spiritual nature; as Peter says, "We are become partakers of the
divine nature, if we flee the corruptible lusts of this world."
By this everyone may know whether he is born of the Spirit,
namely, if he has the nature of the Spirit, even as one that is
born of the flesh, has the nature of the flesh, each in his
order. Birds have their peculiar nature; so also wild animals;
likewise man; each is minded like him of whom he is
born.***</p>

<p>Thus, he that is born of the Spirit, is also spiritually
minded; hence Paul says, "For as many as are led by the Spirit
of God, they are the sons of God."</p>

<p>Finally Christ says to Nicodemus, "If I have told you earthly
things, and ye cannot comprehend or believe, how shall ye
believe, if I tell you of heavenly things?"</p>

<p>Here the Lord deems it greater to comprehend heavenly
things, than earthly things; but children comprehend nothing of
earthly things, how much less of heavenly.</p>

<p>Hence Paul says: Be not children in understanding; howbeit
in malice be ye children, but in understanding be men. For,
faith cannot be comprehended without understanding, even as
Paul says to the .Hebrews, "Faith is a sure confidence of things
hoped for, and conforms itself to things not seen; so that
faith has such power in itself, that it always conforms to
heavenly things, and seeks those things which are above, where
Christ sitteth on the right hand of God."</p>

<br /><cite>* Nicodemus, though ignorant in the matter
itself, understood well enough, that this did not have
reference to children; hence he asked: How can a man be born,
when he is old?</cite> 

<br /><cite>* From the words, "That which is born of the
flesh is flesh," Thomas concludes that this relates only to the
adult; since no newborn infants, but only the adult can live
after the flesh, and, consequently, must be born again.</cite> 

<br /><cite>** The descent of every one is known by his
peculiar nature for like produces like. Hence, if infants are
truly regenerated of the Holy Sprit, the fruits of the latter
must be evident in them from the workings of their nature. The
fruit of the Spirit is love, joy, peace, longsuffering, etc.
Gal. 5:22. hat children do not have such faith, experience and
the holy Scriptures teach, though some say</cite> 

<p>God can easily give children this faith. So say I; and not
only faith, but also understanding, by which faith is
comprehended; yea, even language to confess it; but what sort
of faith children have, they show by their life and fruits. But
though God is almighty, and does according to His will, which
none can resist, He nevertheless observes order in all His
works, according to His pleasure. Hence, let everyone see well
to it, that he do not prescribe to God according to his own
opinion; for He has made all things well. To Him be eternal
praise and honor. Amen.</p>

<p>Since these are the most important passages* with which it
is sought to prove infant baptism, I have, in my weakness and
simplicity, answered them. But that you, my noble sirs, may not
become weary of my long writing, I will conclude; nevertheless,
if my noble sirs desire a fuller answer, I am willing and ready
to answer, as much as lies in my power. May God give His grace
to us all. Amen. Your humble servant,</p>

<p><i>THOMAS VAN IMBROECK.</i></p>

<p>A. D. 1569.-Now when the papists sat in such darkness, that
they immediately put to death those who, having been baptized
in infancy, were, when arriving at riper years and'
understanding, baptized upon faith, a God-fearing teacher of
the church of Jesus Christ, named Jacob de Roore, did
nevertheless not hesitate to make, with regard to this matter,
a salutary and good confession, writing in his bonds and
imprisonment at Bruges, in Flanders, the following
words, "Furthermore, I confess a Christian baptism, according to
the tenor of the Word of God, as Christ commanded His apostles,
saying, "Go, and teach all nations, baptizing them," etc.</p>

<p>Afterwards he relates how the apostles executed this command
of Christ, saying, "Thus did the apostles, according to their
Lord's command," etc.</p>

<p>Continuing, he explains the words of Peter, Acts 2:39;"For
the promise is unto you, and to your children," etc.; from
which the opponents were frequently wont to prove (in their
manner) infant baptism, or at least, to give it some
plausibility. Thereupon he says as follows, "By this the apostle
shows that the gift of the Holy Ghost was to be given, not only
to the Jews and their children, but also to the Gentiles, who
were far from the kingdom of God, and whom God should also
call, as the prophet Joel had foretold.**</p>

<p>Thus, he says finally, baptism must be received upon faith,
for a burial of sin, a washing of regeneration, a covenant of
the Christian life, a putting on of the body of Christ, an
ingrafting into the true olive tree and vine of Christ, an
entrance into the</p>

<br /><cite>* Understand, those which were the most
important in his time; for afterwards many others were, to the
detriment of truth, imagined in addition. to them.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* He adduces the prophecy of Joel for the
purpose of showing, that the latter speaks of the prophesying
of sons and daughters, and not of infants. Chap. 2, verse
28.</cite> 

</div><div id="373"> 

<p>spiritual ark of Noah, of which Christ is the true
householder, as is written of Him (this He says of His
church), "Behold, here am I, and the children (the true
believers) which thou hast given me." See in <i>Martyrs Mirror,
page 537,</i> col. 2, <i>3,</i> and afterwards, in the Account
of the Martyrs, for the year 1569.</p>

<p>It is not necessary here to say anything more; since the
views of this man, regarding this matter, are well known and in
the memory of almost everyone. Hence we will conclude this, and
proceed to others of like confession.</p>

<p>A. D. 1572.-At this time there was imprisoned at Dort, in
Holland, a man of great virtue and piety, named John Wouterss
van Kuyck, who, in a letter written to his wife, relates what
happened to him in prison on account of the faith. Among other
things he speaks of what the bailiff, in his presence, demanded
of the judges, namely: That pursuant to the decree of the king,
he should be burnt alive at the stake; because he had departed
from the Roman Catholic faith, and had (as he said), been
rebaptized by the Anabaptists.</p>

<p>Thereupon this pious witness of Jesus answered as he further
writes, saying, "Then I replied: I have never departed from the
Christian faith; and I know no Anabaptists. I have been
baptized only once upon my faith; infant baptism I do not
consider a baptism; and when I was a child, I did as a child,
as my parents led me. See in the last-mentioned <i>Martyrs'
Mirror, page</i> 692, col. 2, also in the following account of
the martyrs, for the year 1572.</p>

<p>In another letter delivered by him to the bailiff and the
council of said city, he makes this confession of his own
baptism, "Faith and inward baptism constrained me to obedience
toward His word, to fulfill His righteousness. Hence I confess,
that I was baptized upon my faith, and this on my request,
according to the command of Christ, renouncing the devil, the
world, etc." <i>Sane book, page</i> 701.</p>

<p>Thus, this witness of Jesus openly, boldly, and unfeignedly
declared the truth of God in this matter, according to the
testimony of the Word of God, and his conscience; to show which
has here been our sole aim.</p>

<p>A. <i>D.</i> 1586.-At Ingolstadt, in Bavaria, one Christian
Gasteiger, after suffering . much onset and opposition from the
Jesuits, was, among other things, also assailed in regard to
his belief respecting baptism; since he held that it should be
administered to none but the believing and penitent. On a
certain day, therefore, there came to him, where he was
imprisoned, two of that order, saying: That a child had to be
baptized or it would be damned. But he contradicted them with
arguments and the authority of the holy Scriptures. This belief
he held fast to the end, since he died thereupon, as shall
appear more fully in the account of the martyrs, regarding his
death, for he year 1586. Also, in Mart. Mir., <i>page</i> 886,
col. 2.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1592-We find, that besides a disputation held
against some papists who maintained infant baptism, Bartholomew
Panten, a pious brother, also left, before his departure from
this world, a testament, as a last farewell, to his little
daughter; in which he, among other things, admonishes her, how
she, when arriving at maturity, should act with regard to this
matter, saying, "My dear child, take this to heart, and when you
attain your understanding, my paternal request to you is, to
join those who fear God, who are by far the least among all
people, but who are nevertheless the true congregation and
church of God; who practice their rule according to the
ordinance of the Lord, and the practice of the apostles,
namely, a baptism which is founded upon faith, and must be
received as Christ has commanded, and as is written in
Matthew."</p>

<p>Then; treating of the words of the holy evangelists,
respecting the unprepared condition in which the Pharisees came
to the baptism of John, and that the latter rebuked them,
saying, "O generation of vipers, who hath warned you to flee
from the wrath to come? Bring forth therefore fruits meet for
repentance," he says by way of explanation, "Here it is to be
well understood, that confession is not sufficient, but that
also sorrow of heart, and good works, must be evinced. For; all
outward actions, without renewing the spirit, cannot please
God." See the before-mentioned <i>Mart.</i> Mirr., p. 924, col.
1. This matter will be shown more circumstantially in the
account of his martyrdom, for the year 1592.</p>

<p>NOTE.-We could have filled this century with a very great
number of salutary confessors respecting this article, had we
not deemed this unnecessary and to no purpose; for no one who
has but a little experience in history, will doubt it; since
this was not one of the least points, on account of which an
almost countless number of persons lost their lives in the last
persecution, early in this century, and throughout to the
close.</p>
<h1>CONFESSION OF FAITH, ACCORDING TO THE HOLY WORD of  GOD</h1>

<p>Now, in order to bring this account to an appropriate
conclusion, we deem it not inadvisable, to add here a certain
<i>Confession of Faith,</i> which very probably, was once
contained in the <i>History of the pious Anabaptist
Martyrs,</i> and is declared to have been the summary of their
faith; though it may be (which we would not contradict), that
they <i>did</i> not confess all said articles in precisely this
form, but maintain more or less in regard to this or that
point; which, however, if the true foundation of the same is
retained, ought to, according to the nature of love, be borne
with; especially in such persons who did not spare their dear
lives, but gave them unto death; for their God and Saviour.
Nevertheless, we do not find that any of them entertained
contrary views, much less, that they opposed said confession;
which incited us the more to insert it here; hoping that it
will be productive</p>

</div><div id="374"> 

<p>of at least some profit or good in these latter sorrowful
and perverted times; the more to confirm the steadfast in the
faith, as well as to give an occasion to the weak, to prove
themselves wherein they have become weak, and how said weakness
can be removed.</p>

<p><i>About A.</i> D. 1600.--The time when this confession,
which we have just mentioned, was originated, we have not been
able definitely to ascertain; but as it is stated concerning
it, that, as far as the sense is concerned, it was believed,
taught, and practiced, by those called Mennonites, already many
years ago, even as at the time, when it was committed to the
printer, namely, when the last persecution was almost over. We
have therefore given it a place about the year 1600; that is
about the close of this century. The title of it is</p>

<h2>Confession of Faith according to the Holy Word of God.</h2>

<h2>ARTICLE I</h2> 

<p><i>Of the only God of heaven and earth.</i> By the grace of
God, according to the import of the holy Scriptures, we believe
with the heart, and confess with the mouth, that there is one
only, eternal, almighty, and true God; who is the Creator of
heaven and earth, with all things visible and invisible; so
that all things derive their origin and being from Him alone,
and are all sustained, governed and upheld by His almighty
word. He is a just, perfect, holy, incomprehensible and
indescribable, spiritual Being; consisting of or through
Himself, Ex. 3:14, and not needing the help or assistance of
anything; but is Himself the origin and fountain of every good
thing. From His overflowing goodness every good and perfect
gift proceeds and descends. And He is the living One, eternal,
without beginning or end, an almighty, true God and Lord of
Hosts, a commanding King over all, and above us all in heaven
and earth, a terrible judge and an avenging, consuming fire;
the true Light, just, righteous and holy, full of grace and
peace, and a God of love and of all comfort, longsuffering and
of great mercy.</p>

<p>And this only good, and only wise, exalted God, who is all
in all, dwells with His worshipful, glorious existence above in
heaven, in a light which no man has seen, nor can see, and is
present everywhere with His Spirit and power, filling heaven
and earth, so that heaven is His throne, and the earth His
footstool. From His all-seeing eye nothing is hid, but He is an
omniscient hearer and beholder of the hearts and secret intents
and thoughts of all men; all things being naked and open unto
His eyes. I Cor. 4:5; Heb. 4:13.</p>

<p>And since He is such an omniscient God, full of all grace
and mercy, and a God of all comfort, with whom alone the
fountain of wisdom and all good gifts are to be found; and
since He will not give his His divine honor to another,
therefore all men are in duty bound, to seek, by ardent prayer
and with a desiring heart, all grace, peace, forgiveness of
sins, and eternal life, in God alone and in none other.*</p>

<p>And to this only Potentate, the King of kings, and Lord of
lords, before whose worshipful majesty the angels stand with
trembling; whose word is true, and whose command is powerful;
who is a righteous judge over all; finally every knee shall
bow, and every tongue confess, that He alone is Lord, to the
praise of His glory.</p>

<p>And this only, eternal, true God of Abraham, Isaac, and
Jacob, consists in one true Father, and one true Son, and one
true Holy Ghost. And besides this only God there never has been
another, nor ever will be.</p>

<p>Concerning this only, eternal God, read: Hear, O Israel: The
Lord our God is one Lord. Deut. 6:4; Mark 12 29.</p>

<p>Through Isaiah he speaks: For I am God, and there is none
else; I am God, and there is none like me. Isa. 46:9; 45:5;
44:6; 43:11; 41:4.</p>

<p>Through Paul he says: That an idol is nothing in the world,
and that there is none other God but one. I Cor. 8:4; 12:6;
Eph. 4:6.</p>

<p>And in this only God we must necessarily believe to
salvation, as the beginning and foundation of the Christian
faith. Read: For he that cometh to God must believe that He is,
and that He is a rewarder of them that diligently seek Him.
Heb. 11:6.</p>

<p>To believe in this God, is also called a principle of the
Christian doctrine. Read Heb. 6:1; Jas. 2: i 9; John 17:8;
14:1; Gen. 15:6; Rom. 4:9.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE II</h2> 

<p><i>Of the eternal birth and Godhead of the only and eternal
Son of God,</i> we confess: That the Son of God was born and
proceeded from all eternity, in an ineffable manner, from the
true God, His Father; of the essence and substance of the
almighty God, as a Light from the true Light, true God from the
true God; being in the form of God, the likeness of the
invisible God, the brightness of His glory, and the express
image of His person; so that He was born and proceeded from God
His Father as the brightness of the everlasting light, the
immaculate reflection of the power of God, and the image of His
goodness; being equal with His Father in essence, form, and
attributes; as eternal, almighty, holy, and the like. For it is
an inevitable consequence that like produces like.</p>

<p>Thus, as the stone spoken of by the prophet Daniel, which
was cut out of the mountain without hands, and itself became a
great mountain, is of the same essence and substance with the
mountain; so also the precious, elect cornerstone, Jesus
Christ, was born or proceeded from God the almighty Father (who
is called a mountain and rock forever), and is of the same
essence and substance with him., " Since God knows everything, believers can call a on Him
with a firm confidence; for He hears their cry and knows heir
wants.</p>

</div><div id="375"> 

<p>Hence, Christ Jesus, the only begotten Son of God, is to be
believed in, confessed, served, honored, and worshiped by all
believers, as the true God with His Father. But as this is also
a matter of faith, and not of reason or comprehension, all this
must be viewed, believed, judged, and spoken of, not humanly,
nor carnally, but divinely and spiritually.</p>

<p>Concerning this high, eternal birth, issue, and Godhead of
the Son of God, read, "Thou art my Son; this day have I begotten
thee." Ps. 2:7."For unto which of the angels said he at any
time, Thou art my Son, this day have I begotten thee? And
again, I will be to him a Father; and he shall be to me a Son.
And again, When he bringeth in the first-begotten into the
world." Heb. 1:5, 6., "So also Christ glorified not himself to be made a high
priest; but he that said unto him, Thou art my Son, today have
I begotten thee." Heb. 5:5., "And we declare unto you glad tidings, how that the promise
which was made unto the fathers, God hath fulfilled the same
unto us their children, in that he raised up Jesus again; as it
is also written in the second psalm, Thou art my Son, this day
have I begotten thee." Acts 13:32, 33. Observe, that this
passage of Paul has reference not only to the raising up of
Christ from the dead, but chiefly to His eternal birth from God
His Father.</p>

<p>The prophet Micah, speaking of Bethlehem, says, "Out of thee
shall he come forth that is to be ruler in Israel; whose goings
forth have been from of old, from everlasting." Mic. 5:2; John
16:28, 30.</p>

<p>Again, Paul says, "Who is the image of the invisible God, the
first-born (mark, <i>the first-born)</i> of every creature."
Col. 1:15; Rev. 3:14.</p>

<p>Also John, "No man hath seen God at any time; the only
begotten Son (mark, <i>the only begotten</i> Son) which is in
the bosom of the Father, he hath declared him." John 1:18 and
14.</p>

<p>. Read also: Prov. 8:23; Dan. 2:34, 45; Syr. 24:13; Rom.
8:29. Concerning the Godhead of Christ, read: Ps. 45:6; Heb.
1:8; John 1:1 and 20:28; Rom. 9:5; I John 5:20.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE III</h2> 

<p><i>D f the Holy Ghost</i> we believe and confess: That there
is a true, real Holy Ghost, also comprehended in the only,
eternal, divine essence; who proceeds from the Father and the
Son and is the power of the Most High, by whom the Father and
the Son operate, and through whom heaven and earth, and all the
heavenly host were made. Hence, the divine attributes are
ascribed to Him; as eternal, almighty, holy, omniscient; who
searches the deep things of the Godhead, knows what is in God,
and goes through and searches all spirits, however subtle they
may be. He is therefore confessed as the true God with the
Father and the Son. And He is the subtle breath of the power of
God, who with His divine inspiration illuminates and enkindles
the heart of man, and confirms and leads him into all ruth. He
is given by God unto all who obey Him. All that are led by this
Spirit, are the sons of God. He that has not this Spirit, does
not belong to God. He is called the real and earnest of the
inheritance of all true children of God. He who blasphemes this
Spirit, must never expect forgiveness. Christ also commands to
baptize believers in the name of the Holy Ghost.</p>

<p>Concerning this only Spirit of God, read, "In the beginning
God created the heaven and the earth. And the earth was without
form and void; and darkness was upon the face of the deep. And
the Spirit of God moved upon the face of the waters." Gen. 1:1,
2.</p>

<p>Through Paul we are taught, "There are diversities of gifts,
but the same Spirit." I Cor. 12:4."But all these worketh that
one and the selfsame Spirit, dividing to every man severally as
he will. For by one Spirit are we all baptized into one body,
whether we be Jews or Gentiles, whether we be bond or free; and
have been all made to drink into one Spirit." I Cor. 12:11,
13..Read also: II Sam. 23:2; Eph. 4:4; Matt. 10:20; Luke 12:12;
Matt. 3:16; John 1:32; Matt. 28:19; Mark 16:16.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE IV</h2> 

<p><i>How Father, Son, and Holy Ghost are to be distinguished
in certain attributes.</i> Of this we confess</p>

<p>That in the only eternal Divine Being there are not three
mere names; but that each name has its true signification and
attributes; so that there is a true real Father, of whom all
things are; and a true, real Son, by whom are all things; and a
true, real Holy Ghost, through whom the Father and the Son
operate. The Father is the true Father, who begat the Son
before all time, and from whom the Son proceeded and came, and
by whom He [the Father] created and made all things; and
through whom the Son was sent to be the Saviour of the world.
The Son was born of, proceeded and came from the Father; by
whom the Father created all things, and who was sent by the
Father, and came into the world, and, through the effectual
power of the Most High was conceived by Mary, and born as man.
He suffered, was crucified, died, rose from the dead, ascended
to heaven, and sitteth at the right hand of His Almighty Father
in heaven. The Holy Ghost is He that proceeds from the Father
and the Son, and is sent by them; through whom the Father and
the Son operate and work. He speaks not of Himself, but
whatsoever He has heard from the Father; He takes of the things
of Christ, to show them to His own.</p>

<p>Hence there are, in the same divine Essence, in heaven,
three true witnesses: the Father, the Word; and the Holy Ghost;
of whom the glory of the only begotten Son of God appeared
really and distinctively, in the form of a servant, on earth,
and was also seen by John the Baptist, at the Jordan. And the
Holy Spirit was also distinctively seen by the same John to
descend, in the form of a dove, from God out of heaven, upon
Christ and abide upon</p>

</div><div id="376"> 

<p>Him. And the Father who is. an invisible Spirit, and cannot
be seen by mortal eye, let His voice be heard from heaven, "This
is my beloved Son, in whom I am well pleased."</p>

<p>These three true witnesses are distinctively spoken of, as
follows, "If I bear witness of myself, my witness is not true.
There is another that beareth witness of me." John 5:31,
32., "I am not alone, but I and the Father that sent me. It is
also written in your law that the testimony of two men is true.
I am one that bear witness,of myself, and the Father that sent
me, beareth witness of me." John 8:16-18, 29, 54; I John 5:20;
John 16:32 and 15:24. .</p>

<p>Again, Paul says, "There is one -God, and one Mediator
between -God and men, the man Christ Jesus." I Tim. 2:5., "Whosoever transgresseth,-and abideth not in:he doctrine of
Christ, hath not God: He that abid'!th in the doctrine of
Cbrist, he hath both the'Fa:her and the Son." II John 1. 9.</p>

<p>Of the Holy Ghost, Christ says, "I will pray the Father, and
he shall give you another Comforter;:hat he may abide with you
forever; even the Spirit )f truth; whom the world cannot
receive." John 14:11, 17; Matt. 12:32., "But if I depart I will send him unto you. , . . For he
shall not speak of himself; but whatsoever ie shall hear, that
shall he speak. . . He shall;lorify me; for he shall receive of
mine, and shall;hew it unto you" John 16:7, 13, 14;</p>

<p>How John, the man of God, saw the Holy Ghost in the form of
a dove. Read,"And the Holy Ghost descended in a bodily shape
like, a dove upon him, and a voice came from heaven, which
said, Thou art my beloved Son; in thee. I am well pleased" Luke
3:22., "And John bare record, saying, I saw the Spirit descending
from heaven like a dove, and it abode upon him and I knew him
not; but he that sent me to baptize with water, the same said
unto me, Upon whom thou shalt see the Spirit descending and
remaining on him, the same is he which baptizeth with the Holy
Ghost. And I saw, and bare record that this is the Son of God"
John 1:32-34: Read also Mark 1:10., "And Jesus, when he was baptized, went up straightway out of
the water: and, lo, the heavens were opened unto him, and John
saw the Spirit of God descending like a dove, and lighting upon
him" Matt. 3:16.</p>

<p>Mark, bow, awfully they sin against the Most High, who,
cntrary to all these express words of the Holy Ghost, still
dare- say and maintain, that John did not see the Holy Ghost,
but only a natural or created dove.</p>

<p>Hear also how the voice of the Father was heard from
heaven:."And to a voice from heaven-saying, This is my beloved
Son, in whom I am well pleased." Matt. 3:17., "For he received from God the Father, honour and glory, when
there came such a voice to him from the excellent glory." II
Pet. 1:17. Read also Ps. 110:1; II Esd. 13:32; John 1:1; I Cor.
12:5; I John 6:7., "For there are three that bear record in heaven, the Father,
the Word, and the Holy Ghost." I John 5:7; I Cor. 12:4; Rev.
3:14.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE V</h2> 

<p><i>That these three true witnesses are but one only true
God.</i> Hereupon we confessed: That this must certainly
follow, from the fact, that the Son proceeded or came forth
from the eternal essence and substance of the Father; and that
the Holy Ghost truly proceeds from the Father and Son, and is
comprehended together with the Father and the Son in the only;
eternal Divine Being.*</p>

<p>Moreover, this is abundantly testified and confirmed by the
divine works and attributes, which are ascribed in the holy
Scriptures jointly to the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost,
of which no angels in heaven, much less, any other creatures
are capable, but which belong and are peculiar to the only God
alone; as the creating, governing, and upholding of heaven and
earth with all things visible and invisible; the gracious
Gospel sent from heaven; the sending out of the apostles to
preach the same among all nations; the raising of man from the
dead, and the giving of eternal life; and all divine worship,
honor and reverence. Hence they are perfectly one, not only in
will, words, and works, but also in essence, and in the eternal
and indescribable Godhead. Thus also in the divine works, so
that whatsoever the Father does, the Son does likewise; and as
the Father raises up the dead, even so the Son quickens whom He
will; and all this they do in the power and with the
co-operation of the Holy Ghost; and hence they can with reason
and truth be called the <i>one God of heaven and earth.</i>
Besides Him, there has been no other God, neither shall another
be found in all eternity. Hence in the term <i>one God,</i>
Father, Son and Holy Ghost are comprehended.</p>

<p>On this subject read the prophet Jeremiah, "The gods that
have not made the heavens and the earth, even they shall perish
from the earth, and from under these heavens. He hath made the
earth by his power, he hath established the world by his
wisdom." Jer. 10:11, 12; Isa. 44:24; Ps. 96:5., "By the word of the Lord were the heavens made; and all the
host of them by the breath of his mouth." Ps. 33:6; Heb. 3:4;
Acts 4:24., "All things were made by him (Christ); and without him was
not anything made that was made, " John 1:3 and 5:19.</p>

<p>Concerning this perfect unity read, "My Father, which gave
them me (says Christ) is greater than all; and no man i's able
to pluck them out of my Father's hand. I and my Father are
one." John 10:29, 30.</p>

<br /><cite>* These things are very difficult to understand,
and above hu. man reason; hence they are not to be comprehended
by reason, but must reverently be embraced in faith.</cite> 

</div><div id="377"> 

<p>Christ said to Philip, "He that hath seen me hath seen the
Father. Believest thou not that I am in the Father, and the
Father in me?" John 14:9, 10; 12:45; 17:21.</p>

<p>How the Holy Ghost is also called God. Read what Peter said
to Ananias, "Why hath Satan filled thine heart to lie to the
Holy Ghost?" And a little further on, "Thou hast not lied unto
men, but unto God." Acts 5:3, 4., "Them that have preached the Gospel unto you with the Holy
Ghost sent down from heaven." I Pet. 1:12., "The grace of the Lord Jesus Christ, and the love of God,
and the communion of the Holy Ghost, be with you all. Amen." II
Cor. 13:14., "For there are three that bear record in heaven, the Father,
the Word, and the Holy Ghost; and these three are one." I John
5:7; Deut. 6:4; Mark 12:29; I Cor. 8:6; Gal. 3:20.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE VI</h2> 

<p><i>Of the creation of all things visible and invisible, and
of the creation of man</i> we confess: That the only, almighty,
and wonderworking God, who is the origin of all good, and for
whose sake all things are created, and have their being,
created, among other invisible things, also a multitude of many
thousand angels, whom He has put as ministering and immortal
spirits in His worshipful glory, to minister unto their
Creator, and to offer Him praise, honor, and thanks; and who
are sent forth by God, as messengers, to minister in manifold
ways for men who shall be heirs of salvation; and with which
angels of God, Christ Jesus shall appear in the clouds of
heaven, to hold judgment over all men. And He shall glorify all
that believe and please God, and make them like the glorious,
immortal angels, and crown them with all holy angels in
everlasting glory.</p>

<p>But as some of these angels became unfaithful and apostate
to God, their Creator, they were, through their own voluntary
sin or pride, rejected by the holy and righteous God, who is of
purer eyes than to behold evil, and were cast down from the
glorious estate of heaven to hell, bound with chains of
darkness and reserved until the great day of judgment, to be
sentenced with all unbelievers to eternal damnation.</p>

<p>These impure spirits or devils are called: the prince of
darkness and spirit of wickedness, who rules in the air and
works in the children of disobedience; with whom all
unbelievers, who are governed and seduced by Satan, are in
fellowship. And as all believers are in the society or
brotherhood of the holy angels, and shall enjoy eternal
salvation with them; so, on the other band, shall all
unbelievers have to endure everlasting damnation with all
impure or apostate angels, with whom unbelievers are in
fellowship.</p>

<p>Likewise, God Almighty, in the beginning, from nothing, in a
most wonderful manner, and above all human reason and
comprehension, created heav en, the earth, and the sea, with
all their glorious adornment, He, the Blessed, only saying, "Let
heaven and earth be made; and his word was a perfect work." He
also adorned the heavens with many glorious lights; two great
lights, one to rule and illume the day, and the other to rule
the night; together with many glorious stars, which He ordained
to the honor of their Creator, and the service of men.</p>

<p>Thus also, the Lord Almighty endowed the earth with many
glorious fountains and running rivers, and adorned it with
manifold trees and animals, and with all that lives and moves
thereon. And He created the sea with great whales and various
kinds of fish, for the wants of man, together with all that
lives and moves therein. And He established the earth out of
the water and in the water, by His almighty and everlasting
word. They shall be preserved until the last great day of
judgment.</p>

<p>After God, the Lord, in five days had most wisely and
excellently created heaven, and earth, and the sea, together
with all visible things, He, on the sixth day, formed man from
the earth, and breathed into him the breath of life; and from
his rib made Eve, a woman, and gave her to him as a helpmeet.
Moreover, He loved them above all other creatures, and clothed
them like Himself with divine virtues, which are righteousness
and true holiness; endowing them with wisdom, speech, and
reason, that they might know, fear, and love their Creator, and
serve Him in voluntary obedience. He placed them as lords over
all creatures, endowing them with immortality, that they might
be and live before Him, and rule and reign over all creatures
which God the Lord created.</p>

<p>Concerning this wonderful creation, read, "Thou art worthy, O
Lord, to receive glory and honor and power; for thou hast
created all things, and for thy pleasure they are and were
created." Rev. 4:11., "For by him were all things created, that are in heaven, and
that are in earth, visible and invisible, whether they be
thrones, or dominions, or principalities, or powers; all things
were created by him, and in him." Col. 1:16; Ps. 33:6.</p>

<p>Regarding the angels, read, "He maketh his angels spirits,
and his ministers a flame of fire. Are they not all ministering
spirits, sent forth to minister for them who shall be heirs of
salvation?" Heb. 1:7, 14; Ps. 104:4.</p>

<p>Concerning the apostasy of the angels, read, "For if God
spared not the angels that sinned, but cast them down to hell,
and delivered them unto chains and darkness, to be reserved
unto judgment." II Pet. 2:4; Jude 6; Luke 10:18; Isa.14:8; Rev.
12:4.</p>

<p>Regarding the creation of the visible things, read, "In the
beginning God created the heaven and the earth." Gen. 1:1; John
1:3; Ps. 33:6.</p>

<p>God said, "Let heaven and earth be made; and thy word was a
perfect work." II Esd. 6:38.</p>

</div><div id="378"> 

<p>"For thine almighty hand, that made the world of matter
without form." Wisd. 11:17., "I beseech thee, my son, look upon the heaven, and the
earth, and all that is therein, and consider that God made them
of things that were not; and so was mankind made likewise." II
Macc. 7:28., "Through faith we understand that the worlds were framed by
the word of God, so that things which are seen were not made of
things which do appear." Heb. 11:3; Acts 17:24; Ps. 146:6;
148:5.</p>

<p>Concerning the creation of man, read, "Let us make man in our
image, after our likeness." Gen. 1:26., "And the Lord formed man of the dust of the ground, and
breathed into his nostrils the breath of life; and man became a
living soul." Gen. 2:7; Acts 17:25; I Cor. 15:45.</p>

<p>How man was created, read, "This only have I found, that God
hath made man upright." Eccl. 7:29; Gen. 1:26; 5:1., "For God created man to be immortal, and made him to be an
image of his own eternity." Wisd. 2:23; Sir. 17:1., "And that ye put on the new man, which after God is created
in righteousness and true holiness." Eph.4:24., "And God saw everything that he had made, and, behold, it
was very good." Gen. 1:31; Deut. 3254.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE VII</h2> 

<p><i>Of the fall and punishment of man</i> we confess: The
first man, Adam, and Eve, having been thus gloriously created
after the likeness of their Creator, unto eternal life, did not
continue long in this estate; but as they were created with a
free will, to choose what they would, so that they could fear,
serve and obey their Creator, or, disobey and forsake Him; and
as their Creator had given them a command, not to eat of the
tree of the knowledge of good and evil; for in the day that
they should eat thereof, they should surely die; they,
notwithstanding this, in their vain desire to be equal to their
Creator in wisdom and knowledge, were led and drawn away from
God, and deceived by Satan; and thus they disobediently and
voluntarily transgressed the command of their Creator. The
woman, last created, was first deceived, and turned her ears
away from God to Satan, and, also seducing her husband, they
through this sin, fell under the wrath and disfavor of God,
and, with all their posterity, became subject that very day, to
temporal and eternal death, and were thus divested of the
divine virtue, which is righteousness, and true holiness, and
became sinful and mortal.</p>

<p>On this account, God the holy and righteous judge, in whose
sight wickedness can not endure, but who is of purer eyes than
to behold evil, or to look on iniquity; and who threatens from
heaven with His wrath and disfavor all disobedience and
ingratitude of men; was so incensed by the sin hus committed by
Adam and Eve, that thereby they not only fell into eternal
condemnation, together with all their posterity, but God the
Lord moreover imposed upon Adam and Eve divers temporal, bodily
punishments, which also continually extend themselves into all
their generations. Who are so corrupted in Adam, that they are
all from their youth, by nature, inclined to sin and evil, and
are therefore deprived of the beautiful pleasuregarden, or
paradise, but must eat their bread, all their. life, in sorrow
and in the sweat of their face, from the uncultivated earth,
which because of this first sin was so cursed and marred, that
it brings forth of itself weeds, thorns, and thistles; and
cover the shame of their bodies made naked by sin. The woman,
as the chief transgressor, has to subject her will and power to
the man, and was constrained to bring forth her children in
pain and anguish. This punishment continues upon all men, until
they finally return to the dust and ashes whence they came.</p>

<p>Concerning how Adam, together with the whole human race,
through sin, fell into temporal and eternal death, and, in
consequence of this, became sinful, read, "Wherefore, as by one
man sin entered into the world, and death by sin; and so death
passed upon all men.""Nevertheless death reigned from Adam to
Moses, even over them that had not sinned." etc."And not as it
was by one that sinned . . . for the judgment was by one to
condemnation," etc."For if by one man's offense death reigned,"
etc."Therefore, as by the offense of one judgment came upon all
men to condemnation," etc."For as by one man's disobedience
many were made sinners," etc. Rom. 5:12, 14-19., "For since by man came death, by man came also the
resurrection of the dead. For as in Adam all die, even so in
Christ shall all be made alive." I Cor. 15:21, 22., "Behold, I was shapen in iniquity; and in sin did my mother
conceive me." Ps. 51:5., "Who can bring a clean thing out of an unclean?" Job
14:4., "Of the woman came the beginning of sin, and through her we
all die." Sir. 25:24; Tit. 2:14; Wisd. 2:24.</p>

<p>The prophet Esdra -says, "The first Adam bearing a wicked
heart, transgressed, and was overcome; and so be all they that
are born of him.""And he transgressed, and thou immediately,
thou appointedst death in him and in his generations." II Esd.
3:21, 7., "O thou Adam, what hast thou done! for though it was thou
that sinned, thou art not fallen alone, but we all that come of
thee." II Esd. 7:48. Read also: John 3:6; Rom. 8:5; Eph. 2:3;
Sir. 17:16; Gen. 6:5.</p>

<p>Read further, how God announced unto Adam his punishment on
account of sin, which punishment God extends unto all his
posterity, "Because thou hast hearkened unto the voice of thy
wife, and hast eaten of the tree, of which I commanded
thee,</p>

</div><div id="379"> 

<p>saying, Thou shalt not eat of it:. cursed is the ground for
thy sake; in sorrow shalt thou eat of it all the days of thy
life; thorns also. and thistles shall it bring forth to thee;
and thou shalt eat the herb of the field: in the sweat of
thy:face shalt thou eat bread, till thou return unto the
ground.; for out of it wast thou taken: for, dust thou art and
unto dust shalt thou return." Gen. 3:17-19, 23, 24. Concerning
the punishment of the woman, read: Gen. 3:16; I Cor. 14:34; I
Tim. 2:12.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE VIII</h2> 

<p><i>Of the restoration or justification. of man.</i> We
confess that Adam and Eve having thus fallen under the wrath
and disfavor of God, and into death and eternal condemnation,
together with all their posterity, so that no remedy or
deliverance 'vas to be found in heaven or earth, among any
created beings, who could help, and redeem them, and reconcile
them to God, the Creator of all things, who is the Almighty God
(against whose majesty they had sinned, and who. alone could
heal them), who is rich and abounding in all grace and mercy,
had compassion upon Adam and his posterity, and, hence,
promised them His only begotten Son as a comforting Redeemer
and Saviour, , whom He would put as enmity between Satan and
thp woman and their seed, to the comfort -and help of fallen
mankind, in order thus to bruise the head of Satan, and to
deprive him of his power; and, in this manner, to deliver Adam
and his posterity from the prison of sin, the power of the
devil and eternal perdition, and to reconcile them to. God.</p>

<p>And even as God the Lord, through this promise, clothed Adam
and his seed internally, according to the soul, with His grace
and mercy, He,-in token of this, also covered the outward shame
and nakedness of the body, making coats of skirls, 'and
clothing them therewith.</p>

<p>And even as Adam, through this.his first, one sin, brought,
not only himself, but with him also his whole posterity,
without exception of persons, and without their own actual evil
work's, into: eternal death and condemnation; so also, God Al
mighty, through this promise of the only Saviour Christ Jesus,
redeemed, delivered, and Justified from condemnation, and
placed into the state of grace and reconciliation, all mien,
without exception of persons, without arty of their good works,
only from pure grace and:mercy. Seeing that Adam's race was not
born of him When lie stood under disfavor and condemnation
before God; but as all men proceed from .Adam as being in a
state of grace, peace, and reconciliation With God, he could
bring forth none but such as stand with him in the same
reconciliation.</p>

<p>Thus none of Adam's race are created or born to
condemnation, but all are.born and brought forth into the world
in the same state of grace and reconciliation with God. Hence,
we hold it to militate not only against the holy Scriptures,
but also utterly against the nature of God, which is just,
righteous, holy, and merciful, that God should punish with
eternal death and damnation, simply on account of Adam's sin;
so great a number of Adam's race, who die in their infancy in a
state of innocence, before they have followed Adam in sin;
seeing the good God, through Christ and for Christ's sake, so
graciously forgave Adam, (who had himself committed the sin)
and placed him in a state of grace.</p>

<p>But men having attained the knowledge of good and evil, and,
through the lust of the flesh, and their own desire, having
been drawn away from the path of virtue and innocence, so that
they follow Adam in sin, hence it comes that they separate
themselves from their Creator, and, consequently, do not
perish, nor are condemned on account of Adam's transgression,
but because of their own unbelief and evil works.</p>

<p>But .the righteous God, who does indeed forgive sin, yet
ofttimes does not suffer it to go entirely unpunished,
permitted the temporal, bodily punishment to remain upon Adam
and Eve, and their posterity, by which they ought to learn to
know, fear, and serve their Creator, and to shun sin; such as
this, that from their infancy they are by nature inclined to
sin and evil, against which they have a 'continual warfare, are
barred out from the beautiful paradise, must cover their
nakedness; the women must subject their power and will to their
husbands, and must bring forth their children in pain and
anguish; and all must eat all the days of their life, with
sorrow, of the corrupted earth, until they return to dust of
the earth, whence they have come.</p>

<p>But all believers receive in this life the restoration or
justification of Christ only through faith, in hope, and
afterwards in the resurrection of the dead they shall receive
it truly and actually, and shall enjoy it forever.</p>

<p>Concerning these glorious and comforting promises of
salvation, read, "And I will put enmity between thee and the
woman, and between thy seed, and her seed; it shall bruise thy
head." Gen. 3:15; Eph. 2:14, 15.</p>

<p>As to how this promise was renewed in the seed and race of
Adam, read: -"The Lord thy God will raise up unto thee a
prophet from the midst of thee, of thy brethren, like unto me;
unto him ye shall hearken." Deut. 18:15; Acts 7:37. To Abraham:
Gen. 12:3; 22:18; Acts 10:43.</p>

<p>Concerning the fact that this promise of justification does
not extend only to a particular class of persons, but to all
men without distinction, read, "Therefore as by the offense of one, judgment came upon all
men to condemnation; even so by the righteousness of one the
free gift came upon all men unto justification of life. For as
by one man's disobedience many were made sinners, so by the
obedience of one shall many be made righteous." Rom. 5:18,
lg., "For since by man came death, by man came also the
resurrection of the dead. For as in Adam all die, even so in
Christ shall all be made alive." I Cor. 15:21, 22.</p>

</div><div id="380"> 
<p>"That was the true Light, which lighteth every man that
cometh into the world." John 1:9, 29., "And he is the propitiation for our sins: and not for ours
only, but also for the sins of the whole world." I John
2:2., "For it pleased the Father that in him should all fullness
dwell; and, having made peace through the blood of his cross,
by him to reconcile all things unto himself; by him, I say,
whether they be things in earth, or things in heaven." Col.
1:19, 20., "For the grace of God that bringeth salvation hath appeared
to all men." Tit. 2:11. Read also Rom. 3:24; 11:32; I Tim. 4:10; II Cor. 5:19; 1 John 4:10;
Isa. 53:6; I Pet. 2:24.</p>

<p>As to how the kingdom of heaven is promised by Christ to
infants, without respect of persons, read, "Then were there
brought unto him little children, that he should put his hands
on them, and pray: and the disciples rebuked them. But Jesus
said, Suffer little children, and forbid them not, to come unto
me; for of such is the kingdom of heaven." Matt. 19:13, 14;
18:3; Mark 10:13; Luke 18:15.</p>

<p>Concerning how God the righteous judge will not punish
infants for the sin of their parents, or of Adam; but to
requite each with righteousness, according to his own works,
read, "For so much then as thou art righteous thyself, thou
orderest all things righteously: thinking it not agreeable with
thy power to condemn him that hath not deserved to be
punished." Wisd. 12:15., "The soul that sinneth, it shall die. The son shall not bear
the iniquity of the father, neither shall the father bear the
iniquity of the son: the righteousness of the righteous shall
be upon him." Ezek. 18:20, 4."The fathers shall not be put to
death for the children, neither shall the children be put to
death for the fathers: every man shall be put to death for his
own sin." Deut. 24:16; Jer. 31:29., "Because he hath appointed a day, in the which he shall
judge the world in righteousness." Acts 17:31; Ps. 7:11; II
Tim. 4:8., "But he that believeth not shall be damned." Mark
16:16."Tribulation and anguish, upon every soul of man that
doeth evil." Rom. 2:9.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE IX</h2> 

<p><i>Of the free will or power of man before and after the
fall; and of the saving grace of God.</i> Of this we confess:
That God Almighty in the beginning created the man Adam and his
wife in His image and likeness, endowing them, above all
creatures, with virtues, knowledge, speech, reason, and a free
will or power; so that they could know, love, fear, and
obediently serve their Creator; or could voluntarily and
disobediently forsake their God; as appeared in the first
transgression, when Adam and his wife, through the subtlety of
the devil, who appeared in the form of a deceitful serpent,
departed from the commandment of God; hence they did not sin
through the foreordination or the will of God; but as they had
been created with a free will, and to do as they would, they
sinned through their own voluntary desire, and transgressed the
command of God contrary to His will.</p>

<p>The man Adam and his wife having thus through their own sin
fallen under the wrath and disfavor of God, whereby they became
sinful and mortal, were again received into favor by God their
Creator; so that they were not utterly divested of their former
wisdom, speech, and knowledge, above all other creatures, nor
of their previous free will or power, as may be seen from their
voluntarily accepting God's gracious promises unto life, and
obeying the voice of the Lord; and as also clearly appears from
the fact that God the Lord very strictly appointed an angel
with a flaming sword to keep the tree of life from Adam lest
through his free will or power he should eat of the tree of
life and live forever; which would have been in Adam's power.
And this free will or power has been transmitted to all their
descendants, who proceed from them as branches from.their stem;
so that even as men are endowed of God with knowledge, reason
and voluntary power, by which they can perform manifold works,
and seek and desire from God the health of their diseased and
infirmed bodies, and are not without action, as the irrational
creatures, blocks and stones, so likewise, man, through the
grace of God, and the moving of the Spirit, by which men live,
and are moved, may open the door of the heart to the salutary
grace of God-which through the Gospel is offered to all men,
and through which death and life is set before manand seek the
health of his wounded soul; or he may voluntarily resist,
reject and neglect this offered grace and moving of the Spirit.
Thus also, as men have eyes and ears, to see and to hear, yet
not of themselves, but only from God the Giver, so they also,
through the grace of God, have a free will or power to do the
good and to leave the evil.</p>

<p>But men, considered in themselves, seeing they are without
the grace of God, are of themselves incapable of thinking
anything that is good, much less are they able to do it. But it
is Almighty God, who through His Spirit of grace works in man
both to will and to do, moves, draws, and chooses them, and
accepts them as His children-, so that men are only recipients
of God's saving grace. Hence all Christians are in duty bound,
to ascribe the beginning, middle and end of their faith, with
all the good fruits thereof, not to themselves, but only to the
unmerited grace of God in Christ Jesus.</p>

<p>We confess moreover: That this saving grace of God is not
limited to a few particular men, but even as the Almighty God
lets His sun rise and shine on the evil and on the good, so He
has extended His grace to all of Adam's race; as it is also
evident, that God, in His goodness, did not leave Himself
without witness among the heathen, doing them good, and so
moving their hearts, that their thoughts and consciences
accused and excused them, so that they could do by nature,
without the</p>

</div><div id="381"> 

<p>hearing of the law of Moses, the things contained in the
law. This appears in still greater. clearness in the coming of
Christ, that Almighty God has proclaimed the saving grace
through the Gospel to the whole world, for a witness unto all
nations, by which all excuse is taken from men, and as an
evidence, that God is not willing that any should perish, but
that all should repent and be saved. According to the import of
the holy and everlasting Gospel, a righteous, eternal, and
irrevocable judgment shall be pronounced, in the last day,
through Christ Jesus, the blessed, over all nations. Hence all
men who now in this time of grace believe and accept the
Gospel, attain unto life; but all who do not believe the
Gospel, but voluntarily reject it, will receive death as their
portion.</p>

<p>On the other hand, we reject the belief of those who say
that Almighty God has indeed caused the word of reconciliation
to be preached to all, or many, but does nevertheless withhold
His grace from many of them, so that the greater part of
mankind cannot accept the word of reconciliation and be saved,
but will, through the purpose or eternal counsel and will of
God, inevitably have to perish forever, and be damned.</p>

<p>On this subject, read various Scripture passages ascribing a
will to man. And the holy Spirit does not speak in vain in the
Scriptures, "He himself made man from the beginning, and left
him in the hand of his counsel; if thou wilt, to keep the
commandments, and to perform acceptable faithfulness. He hath
set fire and water before thee; stretch forth thy hand unto
whether thou wilt. Before man is life and death; and whether
him liketh shall be given him." Sir. 15:14-17; Deut. 11:26;
30:15; 11 Esd. 7:59.</p>

<p>God the Lord said to Cain, "If thou doest not well, sin lieth
at the door: and unto thee shall be his desire, and thou shalt
rule over him." Gen. 4:7.</p>

<p>Concerning man's free will, read, "Let him do what he will,
he sinneth not; let them marry. Nevertheless he that standeth
steadfast in his heart, having no necessity, but hath power
over his own will." I Cor. 7:36-38., "And whosoever offereth a sacrifice of peace offerings unto
the Lord to accomplish his vow, or a free will offering." Lev.
22:21, 23., "Who might offend, and hath not offended? or done evil, and
hath not done it?" Sir. 31:10.</p>

<p>And Paul also says, "For to their power, I bear record, yea,
and beyond their power they were willing of themselves. Now
therefore perform the doing of it; that as there was a
readiness to will, so there may be a performance also." II Cor.
8:3, 11; Philem. 14; Mark 14:7; I Cor. 7:36.</p>

<p>Man can do nothing good of himself, by his own power; but
through the grace of God, he, in his imperfectness, is able to
keep God's commandments."For it is God which worketh in you
both to will and to do of his good pleasure." Philip. 2:13., "Thou dwellest in the midst of a rebellious house, which
have eyes to see, and see not; they have ears to hear, and hear
not." Ezek. 12:2., "For to will is present with me; but how to perform that
which is good I find not." Rom. 7:18-21.</p>

<p>Read here all the Scriptures which unanimously testify that
God does not desire the death of the sinner, but that he be
converted, and live. Ezek. 18:32; 33:11; Wisd. 1:13; Isa.
55:7.</p>

<p>And that God has extended His saving grace not only to the
elect, but to all of Adam's race; and that He also died for
those that perish. Concerning this, read, "For the grace of God
that bringeth salvation hath appeared to all men." Tit.
2:11., "Look unto me, and be ye saved, all the ends of the earth."
Isa. 45:22., "Therefore, as by the offense of one judgment came upon all
men to condemnation; even so by the righteousness of one the
free gift came upon all men unto justification of life." Rom.
5:18., "Who in times past suffered all nations to walk in their own
ways. Nevertheless he left not himself without witness," etc.
Acts 14:16, 17; Rom. 1:19; 2:15., "But there were false prophets also among the people, even
as there shall be false teachers among you, who privily shall
bring in damnable heresies, even denying the Lord that bought
them, and bring upon themselves swift destruction." II Pet.
2:1., "And that he died for all, that they which live should not
henceforth live unto themselves, but unto him which died for
them, and rose again." II Cor. 5:1.5."For God so' loved the
world, that he gave his only begotten Son," etc. John 3:16., "Behold the Lamb of God, which taketh away the sin of the
world!" John 1:29., "For this is good and acceptable in the sight of God our
Savior; who will have all men to be saved, and come unto the
knowledge of the truth." I Tim. 2:3, 4., "He is longsuffering to usward, not willing that any should
perish, but that all should come to repentance." II Pet. 3:9;
Rom. 2:4; Jas. 4:6; Acts 13:46. Read also: Matt. 23:36, 37;
Luke 13:34; II Esd. 1:30.</p>

<p>As to how God the righteous judge will pronounce the final
judgment upon those who disobey* the Gospel, read, "When the
Lord Jesus shall be revealed from heaven with his mighty
angels, in flaming fire, taking vengeance on them that know not
God, and that obey not the Gospel of our Lord Jesus Christ." II
Thess. 1:7, 8; Mark 16:16."This is the book of the commandments
of God, and the law that endureth forever: all they that keep
it shall come to life; but such as leave it shall die." Bar.
4:1.</p>

<br /><cite>* The original says "obey," which evidently is an
error.-Trans.</cite> 

 
<h1>ARTICLE X</h1>

<p><i>Of the providence of God, the election of believers, and
the rejection of unbelievers.</i> Of this we confess: As we
believe and confess that God is</p>

</div><div id="382"> 

<p>omnipotent; and that with Him nothing is impossible; so
likewise is He also prescient and omniscient, so that nothing
is hid from Him in heaven and in earth, neither that which is
to take place until the end of all things, nor that which has
taken place from all eternity. And through this exceeding high
prescience (foreknowledge), knowledge and wisdom of God, which
are unfathomable, He very well saw and knew from the beginning
in eternity until the consummation of the world, who would be
the truly believing recipients of His grace and mercy; and,
again, who should be found unbelieving despisers and rejecters
of said grace. And, consequently, He from the beginning and
from eternity knew, foresaw, elected and ordained all true
believers to inherit eternal salvation through Christ Jesus;
and, on the other hand rejected all unbelieving despisers of
said grace to eternal damnation. Hence the perdition of men is
of themselves, and their salvation only through the Lord their
God, without whom they can do nothing that is good.</p>

<p>But in no wise is it true that the gracious, merciful, and
righteous God (who conforms to His holy nature) has from
eternity foreseen, ordained or predestinated, and created, at a
convenient time, by far the greater number of the human race
unto eternal damnation; or that, they having fallen through the
sin of the first man Adam, He let them remain without help in
eternal death and condemnation, into which they had come
without their knowledge and own actual evil works, without
having in this case seen and known the just cause of their
rejection. Far be it from us, to believe this from the only
good and righteous God I</p>

<p>But, on the other hand, all true followers of Christ believe
and confess: That the righteous God, in the beginning, created
man good and upright, and gave him an existence, and He hates
none of those things which He has created. And when through the
subtlety of the devil they had fallen into eternal death, the
blessed God, whose mercy is over all flesh, and who is not
willing that any should perish, out of pure love and mercy,
redeemed, bought, and delivered, through the atonement of our
Lord and Saviour, Jesus Christ, the whole human race, without
exception of persons, from eternal condemnation; so that, in
consideration of the death of Christ, none shall perish on
account of Adam's sin; but God the righteous judge will judge
the world in righteousness, giving assurance unto all men, and
rendering to every man according to his own works and deeds.
The believers, who by patient continuance in well-doing seek
for eternal life, attain glory and honor and immortality, but
the unbelieving and disobedient, tribulation and anguish, and
the everlasting wrath of God.</p>

<p>Concerning the foreknowledge or prescience of God, read, "And
hath determined the times before appointed, and the bounds of
their habitation." Acts 17:26; Deut. 32:8."She foreseeth signs
and wonders, and the events of seasons and times." Wisd. 8:8;
Dan. 2:28; 5:17., "O everlasting God, that knowest the secrets, and knowest
all things before they be." Hist. Sus. v. 42; Isa. 46:10; Job
42:2; Rom. 9:11; Acts 2:23, 31; I Pet. 1:20., "My substance was not hid from thee, when I was made in
secret, and curiously wrought in the lowest parts of the earth.
Thine eyes did see my substance, yet being unperfect; and in
thy book all my members were written, which in continuance were
fashioned, when as yet there was none of them." Ps. 139:15,
16., "He knew all things ere ever they were created; so also
after they were perfected he looked upon them all." Sir. 23:20;
Acts 15:18.</p>

<p>Here it is to be observed with attention, how God, through
His prescience, from the beginning elected the believers in
Christ, and rejected the unbelievers. Read, "Hearken, my beloved
brethren, hath not God chosen the poor of this world rich in
faith?" etc. Jas. 2:5., "But God hath chosen the foolish things of the world to
confound the wise, and God hath chosen the weak things of the
world to confound the things which are mighty; and base things
of the world, and things which are despised, hath God chosen,"
etc. I Cor. 1:27, 28., "I have even from the beginning declared it to thee; before
it came to pass I. shewed it thee: for I knew that thou wouldst
deal very treacherously, and wast called a transgressor from
the womb." Isa. 48:5, 8; Mal. 1:2; Rom. 9:13; Eph. 3:11; II
Tim. 1:9., "Before they were sealed that have gathered faith for a
treasure; then did I consider these things," etc. II Esd.
6:5., "And who, as I, shall call, and shall declare it, and set it
in order for me, since I appointed the ancient people?" Isa.
44:7., "We know that all things work together for good to them that
love God, to them who are the called according to his purpose.
For whom he did foreknow, he also did predestinate to be
conformed to the image of his Son, that he might be the
firstborn among many brethren. Moreover, whom he did
predestinate, them he also called: and whom he called, them he
also justified." Rom. 8:28-30., "Before I formed thee in the belly I knew thee, and before
thou camest forth out of the womb I sanctified thee," etc. Jer.
1:5., "According as he hath chosen us in him before the foundation
of the world," etc. Eph. 1:4; II Tim. 1:9; John 15:16; Acts
13:48.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE XI</h2> 

<p><i>Of the written Word of God, the law of Moses, and the
Gospel of Christ.</i> We confess: That the old law which was
given by Moses and received by the disposition of angels, was a
perfect doctrine and rule for the descendants of Abraham,
Isaac, and</p>

</div><div id="383"> 

<p>Jacob, with whom God had made and established this His
covenant. According to the doctrine and tenor of this law, this
people had to conduct and regulate themselves, without
transgressing any part of it, or taking away from, or adding to
it, or following their own opinion in regard to it, on pain of
being exterminated, and falling under a great curse. On the
other hand, those who hear, believe and fulfill this law, are
promised life, and many glorious blessings. This blessing and
curse extended mostly to temporal and bodily things.</p>

<p>This law of God-the five books of Moses-embracing also all
kings, priests and prophets, who prophesied and spoke, through
the Spirit of God, among this people, Israel (agreeing with the
law of Moses), which is the entire Old Testament, has through
the grace of God been made known to us in the Bible. This law
is also spiritual, the bringing in of a better hope, and the
schoolmaster to Christ. By its various figures and shadows, as
the Levitical priesthood, ceremonies and sacrifices, the land
of Canaan, kings, the city of Jerusalem, and the Temple, it
pointed and led to Christ Jesus, because the old law was an
intolerable yoke of bondage, which brought condemnation upon
all who did not continue in, and perform all that is written in
the book of the law. And since men, through the weakness of the
flesh, could not perfectly keep all this, they could not obtain
the eternal blissful life through the law, but would have had
to remain under the wrath and anger of God. But Christ Jesus
came, who is the end and the fulfilling of the old law, and the
beginner and author of the new law, of perfect liberty, and the
real, true light, to which all the dark shadows pointed; He
came sent from God, with full power in heaven and on earth and
is the one who has abolished death, and brought life and
immortality to light through the Gospel.</p>

<p>He has made a new covenant with the house of Israel, and the
house of Judah, and has invited thereto all the Gentiles and
nations of the earth, who in time past were strangers and
enemies, but who now, through grace, are all invited, and for
whcfm the way unto life has been opened and well beaten; so
that by obedience through grace, they may now become fellow
citizens with the saints, and of the household of God. And this
is the word of reconciliation, by which Almighty God, through
,His Spirit, works faith, regeneration, and all the good fruits
resulting therefrom in men; in which word of the New Testament
are proclaimed to us full grace and peace, forgiveness of sins,
and eternal life, together with all things, that pertain unto
life and godliness, yea, all the counsel of God. According to
this proclamation all believing children of the New Testament
must necessarily regulate and conduct themselves in all matters
relating to the faith; in accordance with which, finally, an
eternal judgment will be held. And it is so much worthier, and
better established than the Old Testament, as it was given
through a higher and worthier ambassador, and was sealed with a
more precious blood; and it shall not cease, but continue till
the end of the world. And as a man's covenant, if it be
confirmed, may not be changed, or anything taken from or added
to it, so this New and everlasting Covenant, which is confirmed
with the precious death and blood of our Lord Jesus Christ, may
still much less be diminished, or anything added thereto, nor
may it be bent and distorted according to one's own individual
opinions; but all Christians are in duty bound to bow their
whole heart, mind and soul under the obedience of Christ and
the mind of the Holy Spirit expressed in the holy Scriptures,
and to regulate and measure their whole faith and conversation
according to the import thereof.</p>

<p>The Old Testament is to be expounded by and reconciled with
the New Testament and must be distinctively taught among the
people of God</p>

<p>Moses with his stern, threatening, punishing law over all
impenitent sinners as still under the law; but Christ with His
new, glad tidings of the holy Gospel over all believing,
penitent sinners as not under the law, but under grace.</p>

<p>To this new law of Jesus Christ all decrees, councils and
ordinances made contrary to it by men in the world, must give
place; but all Christians must necessarily, as far as the faith
is concerned, regulate and conduct themselves only in
accordance with this blessed Gospel of Christ. And as the
outward man lives outwardly by the nourishment of bread; so the
inward man of the soul lives by every word proceeding from the
mouth of the Lord. Therefore the Word of God must be purely and
sincerely preached, heard, received and kept, by all
believers.</p>

<p>Of the law of Moses: how it was written with the finger of
God on tables of stone, and given by the disposition of angels,
concerning this read</p>

<p>Ex. 20:2; Deut. 5:6; John 1:17; Acts 7:53; Ex. 31:18;
32:16.</p>

<p>Of the severity of the law, and how we must neither take
away from, nor add to, it; in regard to this, read, "Cursed be
he that confirmeth not all the words of this law to do them:
and all the people shall say, Amen." Deut. 27:26; Gal.
3:10., "What thing soever I command you, observe to do it; thou
shalt not add thereto, nor diminish from it." Deut. 12:32, 8;
29:19; Prov. 30:6; Deut. 4:2.</p>

<p>Of the imperfectness of the law, read, "For the law having a
shadow of good things to come, and not the very image of the
things," etc. Heb. 10:1; Col. 2:17., "For the priesthood being changed, there is made of
necessity a change also of the law. For there is verily a
disannulling of the commandment going before, for the weakness
and unprofitableness thereof. For the law made nothing perfect,
but the bringing in of a better hope did." Heb. 7:12, 18, 19;
Gal. 2:16; Acts 13:39; Rom. 8:3.</p>

<p>How Christ is the end and fulfilling of the law; with regard
to this, read, "For Christ is the end of the law for
righteousness to every one that be-</p>

</div><div id="384"> 

<p>lieveth." Rom. 10:4; Matt. 5:17; Rom. 7:4; Gal. 1:19.</p>

<p>Of the power and dignity of the holy Gospel, read, "For I am
not ashamed of the Gospel of Christ: for it is the power of God
unto salvation to every one that believeth," etc. Rom. 1:16;
John 1:17; Luke 16:16; Mark 1:15; I Pet. 1:12., "Who hath abolished death, and hath brought life and
immortality to light through the Gospel." II Tim. 1:10; I Pet.
1:25.</p>

<p>Of the usefulness and power of the holy Gospel, read, "And
that from a child thou hast known the</p>

<p>holy scriptures, which are able to make thee wise unto
salvation through faith which is in Christ Jesus. All scripture
is given by inspiration of God,</p>

<p>and is profitable for doctrine, for reproof, for correction,
for instruction in righteousness: that the man of God may be
perfect, thoroughly furnished unto all good works." II Tim.
3:15-17; II Peter 3:15., "Search the Scriptures; for in them ye think ye have eternal
life.""He that believeth on me, as the Scripture hath said,"
etc. John 5:39; 7:38; James 1:21; Matt. 4:4; Dent. 8'3; Wisd.
16:26; Rev. 22:18; Deut. 4:2; 12:32; Prov. 30:6., "For whatsoever things were written aforetime were written
for our learning, that we through patience, and comfort of the
Scriptures might have hope." Rom. 15:4.</p>

<p>How Christ Jesus will pronounce the last judgment upon the
obedience of the Gospel, read."The word that I have spoken, the
same shall judge, him in the last day." John 12:48., "When the Lord Jesus shall be revealed from heaven with His
mighty angels, in flaming fire, taking vengeance on them that
know not God, and that obey not the Gospel of our Lord Jesus
Christ</p>

<p>who shall be punished with everlasting destruction from the
presence of the Lord," etc. II Thess. 1:7-9; Matt. 24:14; Heb.
4:12; Rev. 20:12.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE XII</h2> 

<p><i>Of saving faith.</i> We confess: That saving faith is not
a vain or hidden thing unborn in man; nor does it consist in us
having a historical knowledge derived from the holy Scriptures,
and that we have much to say about it, without having the real
substance or signification thereof. But the real and true
faith, which avails before God, is. a sure knowledge of the
heart in a sure confidence, which we receive from God, not
through our own power, will, or ability, but through the
hearing of the Word of God; and which, through the illumination
of the Holy Spirit is imprinted on, and written in, the heart,
and works so effectually in us, that we are drawn away by it
from all visible and perishable things, to the invisible and
living God; acquiring thereby a new spiritual taste for that
which is heavenly, and not for that which is earthly. For
saving faith, accompanied with hope and love, is of such a
nature that it conforms to things not seen. Hence, all true
believers gladly and obediently submit hemselves to all the
commandments of God, con tained in the holy Scriptures, and,
when necessary testify to and confess them with the mouth
before kings, princes, lords, and all men, not allowing
themselves to be drawn away therefrom by any means whatever,
though, on account thereof, mon ey, property, body and life be
sacrificed unto spoil ing, water, and fire. For the power of
God, which preserves them in the faith, strengthens them, so
that they esteem all the sufferings of this time brief and
light, not avenging themselves, but praying for their
persecutors, gladly suffering for the name of the Lord what is
imposed upon them, because of .the faith, hope, and love which
they have to their Creator and His heavenly riches.</p>

<p>Where this true faith is received in the heart, there the
fruits of the Holy Spirit, as witnesses of the same, must
follow and flow out. On the contrary, unbelief, with its
unfruitful works of darkness must flee, as darkness before the
clear, sunlight. By this faith, which is the beginning of the
Christian doctrine, we become children of God, overcome the
world, are armed against all the subtle wiles of the devil,
become sanctified, justified, saved, and partakers of all the
benefits of God shown in Christ Jesus; and without this faith
it is impossible to please God.</p>

<p>In this true faith we cannot stand still, but, with humble
fasting, praying, and supplicating in the Spirit, we must plead
for help, assistance, and new strength in all divine virtues,
unto the end, in order that God may strengthen and preserve us
in the same. Where this is neglected men may fall from the
faith; the good Spirit may be taken away, and their names
blotted out of the Book of Life, and written again in the
earth. To this true faith, which is a noble gift of God, all
men, who have attained to understanding and knowledge, so that
they can hear and understand the Word of God, without
distinction of persons, are called through the divine word, and
invited to come; but all infants, and those whom God permits to
remain in their infancy are herefrom excepted and excluded.
They are under the grace and pleasure of God through the
atonement of Jesus Christ, by which He, through His blood,
cleansed and redeemed the whole human race from the fall of
Adam, without requiring of them any other means than faith,
hope, love and the observance of certain commandments of God.
It is therefore a great error that some ascribe faith to new
born infants; or [that they say] that without this they cannot
be saved. It is a sure sign that said persons do not know the
true faith, and do not believe the words <i>of</i> Jesus
Christ, who has promised the kingdom of heaven to infants
without this.</p>

<p>For, as true faith consists in hearing, believing and
accepting the good things which God offers us through His Word;
and, again, as unbelief consists in despising and rejecting
those things; and since infants have neither knowledge,
ability, inclination. nor emotion concerning any of these
things, as all intelligent persons see and know; therefore it
must</p>

</div><div id="385"> 

<p>truly follow that neither faith nor unbelief may be
attributed to infants; but they are simple and ignorant, and in
this state perfectly pleasing to God, He having set them as
examples for us, that we should imitate them in their
simplicity.</p>

<p>How the true faith is a gift of God, and is wrought in the
hearts of men through the hearing of God's Word, read, "For by
grace are ye saved through faith; and that not of yourselves;
it is the gift of God." Eph. 2:8; Rom. 12:3; Col. 2:12; Phil.
1:29; Jude 3., "So then faith cometh by hearing, and hearing by the word of
God." Rom. 10:17; Heb. 6:2.</p>

<p>With regard to how we must believe in God through His Word,
read, "Neither pray I for these alone, but for them also which
shall believe on me through their word." John 17:20; Eph. 1:9;
John 7:38; 14:1; Heb. 11:6; I Pet. 1:21; II Tim. 3:15.</p>

<p>Concerning how true faith is not vain, but manifests its
effectual power and nature, read, "By whom we have received
grace and apostleship, for obedience to the faith among all
nations," etc. Rom. 1:5; 16:25; Acts 6:7., "When ye received the word of God which ye heard of us, ye
received it not as the word of men, but, as it is in truth, the
word of God, which effectually worketh also in you that
believe." I Thess. 2:13., "In Jesus Christ neither circumcision availeth anything, nor
uncircumcision; but faith which worketh by love." Gal. 5:6.</p>

<p>He that does not evince from his faith the seven virtues
required,"is blind, and cannot see afar off," etc. II Pet. 1:9;
Jas. 2:26., "But the just shall live by his faith." Hab. 2:4; Heb.
10:38; Rom. 1:17; Gal. 3:11.</p>

<p>By faith we become righteous and partakers of the benefits
of God. Acts 26:18; Rom. 10:10; Gen. 15:6; Rom. 4:3; Gal. 3:6;
Mark 16:16.</p>

<p>We must pray to God, to be strengthened and kept in the
faith. Luke 17:5; I Pet. 1:5.</p>

<p>When the grace of God is neglected through unbelief and evil
works, one may fall away from the faith, and be blotted out of
the Book of .Life. Now the Spirit speaketh expressly, that in
the latter times some shall depart from the faith. I Tim. 4:1;
II Peter 2:1; I Tim. 6:10.</p>

<p><i>"Which for</i> a while believe, and in time of temptation
fall away." Luke 8:13., "One that returneth from righteousness to sin: the Lord
prepareth such a one for the sword." Sirach 26:28; Jer. 17:13;
Prov. 3:21; Heb. 6:6., "The Lord said unto Moses, Whosoever bath sinned against me,
him will I blot out of my book." Ex. 32:33; Rev. 3:5; Ps.
69:29; Isa. 1:2; 30:1; Jer. 18:7.</p>

<p>How infants are simple and ignorant, and that therefore
neither faith nor unbelief may be imputed to them; but that
they are well-pleasing to God through His grace, without any
other means, read, "Moreover, your little ones, which ye said
should be a prey, and your children, which in that day had no
knowledge between good and evil, they shall go in thither, and
unto them will I give it, and they shall possess it." Deut.
1:39; Matt. 19:14., "When I was a child, I spake as a child, I understood as a
child, I thought as a child: but when I became a man, I put
away childish things." I Cor. 13:11; Heb. 5:13., "Brethren, be not children in understanding howbeit in
malice be ye children." I Cor. 14:20; Eph. 4:14; Matt. 18:2;
19:13; Mark 10:13; Luke 18:15.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE XIII</h2> 

<p><i>Of regeneration and the new creature,</i> we confess:
Inasmuch as our first parents, Adam and Eve, through their
transgression, separated themselves from God, and fell into
temporal and eternal death, with all their posterity, and,
consequently, lost the image of God, which is righteousness and
true holiness; became depraved in their nature, and inclined to
sin and wickedness from their youth; so that of all men none
can attain unto faith and a godly conversation through the
power of their first birth, which has sprung and proceeded from
sinful seed; because that which is born of the flesh is flesh,
and hence, carnally minded, and the natural man does not
receive the things of the Spirit of God; therefore, all men,
having come of the earth, shall return to dust and earth, and,
in part, are also like to the corrupted earth, which of itself
does not bring forth good grain, but must thereto be prepared
anew, and sown with good seed. Thus also, all men, when they
have passed their youth, and have come to understand and
discern good and evil, we perceive, that their carnal hearts
and earthly life, being conceived in sin, are inclined to sin,
which conceives by its own lust, which awakens sin in them, and
allures and moves them to actual sin; and thus they fall from
grace, to which they had been redeemed through the atonement of
Christwhich plunges them into the death of sin.</p>

<p>Hence, God the Lord requires and demands through His Word,
of all men of understanding, a true reformation and a renewing
from these their own actual sins; that is, that through the
hearing of the Word of God they receive the faith, become
regenerated from above, of God; be created anew in the inner
mind of the heart, according to the image of God, and
circumcised, being translated from the carnal into the
spiritual, from unbelief into faith, from that which is
earthly-minded and like Adam into that which is heavenly-minded
and like Jesus Christ; that they crucify and mortify their
earthly members, and feel, prove, and taste that which is
heavenly, and not that which is earthly. To this, God promises
life, peace, and all heavenly riches; and it is the
sanctification in the spirit of the Mind, and the appropriation
of all the benefits of Christ (which have been lost through our
own actual sin), and has the promise of eternal salvation.</p>

</div><div id="386"> 

<p>And wherever this renewing and conversion of the mind and
the heart is not found (among all those who know sin have
served it), there Christ and the life do not exist; and without
this renewing neither circumcision nor uncircumcision, baptism
nor Supper, nor any ceremonies, however glorious they may
appear, avail anything.</p>

<p>And as man in the beginning is brought forth with pain and
anguish from the flesh, so the second, spiritual generation is
also called a birth; and it takes place with godly sorrow over
sin, and with the crucifying and mortifying of the earthly
members.</p>

<p>And as men by the fall of Adam were not altogether deprived
and divested of all godly virtues and qualities, so as to
become like Satan in evil, but through the grace of God have
retained many good principles, so the innate sinful nature,
affection for, and proneness to sin are not utterly removed by
regeneration, but remain until death in the regenerated; so
that the flesh lusts against the Spirit, and the lust or
indwelling sin wars against the law of the new mind, so that
the regenerated enter upon a continuous warfare, and must
constantly crucify and mortify the lusts of the flesh, tame and
bring into subjection their bodies, and abstain from fleshly
lusts, which war against the soul; and thus fighting, they must
keep the victory unto death.</p>

<p>On the other hand, the assertion of those who ascribe
regeneration to new-born infants, and say that without this
they cannot be saved, is rejected as a grave error. Some of
these found regeneration upon infant baptism, maintaining that
as soon as they have their children baptized, they are also,
through this ceremony of baptism, regenerated. Others build the
regeneration of infants in the justification or general
redemption of Christ, by which the human race has been
reconciled from the fall of Adam and put in a state of grace;
saying that children are regenerated as soon as they are
conceived by the mother; thus putting regeneration, against all
right and probability, before the first birth which is of the
flesh. Soiree cannot tell whether infants become partakers of
regeneration before, in, or after baptism; from which it is
judged that the aforesaid persons treat of regeneration without
the holy Scriptures and all true reason, as the blind man of
colors; since Almighty God, nowhere in His holy Word speaks of
the regeneration of infants. And though children are conceived
in sin, or born from sinful seed, yet they have never known,
served, or practiced sin, from which they might be regenerated,
converted, and renewed in their mind and heart; but they have
without this been born, and placed by God in so holy and
God-pleasing a state, through the atonement of Christ, that no
adult person can, through regeneration and the putting off of
the sinful body of the flesh, and the renewing of the mind,
become more sinless, holy and God-pleasing; seeing the innate
sinfulness, lust or inclination to sin remains in the most
pious, regenerated, adult persons until death (not less than in
children, in their infancy), against which they carry on a
constant warfare; and besides this, Almighty God, by His Word,
requires of all men that have served sin, no higher or greater
reparation than that they be converted by regeneration, and
become like unto children in sin and malice. With what reason,
then, can regeneration be applied to children, who have never
committed sin, from which they could be regenerated; seeing
infancy has already the innocence which is acceptable to God,
and has been set as an example before men, after which all the
regenerated must labor and strive until death.</p>

<p>Of this heavenly birth from God, and how it is effected
through the Spirit and the Word of God, read, "Seeing ye have
purified your souls in obeying the truth through the Spirit
unto unfeigned love of the brethren, see that ye love one
another with a pure heart fervently: being born again, not of
corruptible seed, but of incorruptible, by the word of God,
which liveth and abideth forever." I Pet. 1:22, 23; 2:2; James
1:18; I Cor. 4:15; Gal. 4:19; Philem. 10., "Not by works of righteousness which we have done, but
according to his mercy he saved us, by the washing of
regeneration, and renewing of the Holy Ghost," etc. Tit.
3:5.</p>

<p>That regeneration is not a vain or hidden thing, but demands
a new life and the following of Christ, and that eternal
salvation is promised thereupon, read, "Verily, 1 say unto you,
that ye which have followed me, in the regeneration when the
Son of man shall sit in the throne of his glory, ye also shall
sit upon twelve thrones, judging the twelve tribes of Israel."
Matt. 19:28., "For in Christ Jesus neither circumcision availeth anything,
nor uncircumcision, but a new creature. And as many as walk
according to this rule, peace be on them, and mercy, and upon
the Israel of God." Gal. 6:15, 16., "But as many as received him, to them gave he power to
become the sons of God, even to them that believe on his name:
which were born, not of blood, nor of the will of the flesh,
nor of the will of man, but of God." John 1:12, 13.</p>

<p>To all who have served sin, and have not been regenerated,
the kingdom of God is denied. Concerning this, read, "Verily,
verily, I say unto thee, except a man be born again, he cannot
see the kingdom of God.", "Except a man be born of water and of the Spirit, he cannot
enter into the kingdom of God. That which is born of the flesh
is flesh; and that which is born of the Spirit is spirit.
Marvel not that I said unto thee, Ye must be born again. The
wind bloweth where it listeth, and thou hearest the sound
thereof, but canst not tell whence it cometh, and whither it
goeth; so is every one that is born of the Spirit." John 3:3,
5-8.</p>

<p>That the regenerated do not become perfect in this life, but
must fight unto death against the flesh,</p>

</div><div id="387"> 

<p>the world, and sin, read, "Not as though I had already
attained, either were already perfect: but I follow after,"
etc. Phil. 3:12; 1:30; Col. 1:29; Rev. 2:10., " I keep under my body, and bring it into subjection: lest
that by any means, when I have preached to others, I myself
should be a castaway." I Cor. 9:27., "For the flesh lusteth against the Spirit, and the Spirit
against the flesh; and these are contrary, the one to the
other; so that ye cannot do the things that ye would. But if ye
be led by the Spirit," etc. Gal. 5:17,18; I Pet. 2:11; Rom.
7:18, 23; Jas. 3:2.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE XIV</h2> 

<p><i>Of the incarnation of the eternal and only begotten Son
of</i> <i>God.</i> We confess: That the exalted and true God
faithfully kept and fulfilled His exceeding great and precious
promises, which He had made in the beginning concerning His
Son, who had been foreordained to this end before the
foundation of the world, but in these last times was manifest
for our sakes.</p>

<p>This glorious and cheering promise was originally given to
fallen Adam and Eve, and was afterwards renewed in their seed,
as in Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob, Moses and David. Of Him did
all the prophets prophesy, and on Him did all the pious fathers
hope with a firm confidence (as though they had seen Him), that
Shiloh would come from Judah, and that this beautiful star
would arise out of Jacob. This truly and really took place as
follows: When everything was in tranquillity, when the royal
sceptre had departed from Judah, and the seed of Jacob was
under tribute to the heathen; then the gracious God remembered
His holy covenant, and sent His true, real Word or Son out of
heaven, from His royal throne; having to this end foreordained
and elected the righteous Joseph, of the house and generation
of David, whose espoused wife was Mary, whom God had blessed
and chosen for this purpose above all other women.</p>

<p>To this Joseph and Mary the Holy Ghost points from
generation to generation, as well as to the town of Bethlehem,
out of which this Light long before promised was to arise and
come forth; in order that all the pious who waited and hoped
for this salvation, might have a certain consolation and
knowledge from which tribe, city and place they were to expect
this Saviour of the world.</p>

<p>Thus Mary received the message through the angel of God, and
believed it, being overshadowed by the power of the Highest,
and conceived of the Holy Ghost the true, real Word, which was
in the beginning with God, and by which all things were
created. The same, through the effectual power of the Almighty
God, became flesh or man in her, and was born of her, the Son
of the Most High God, whom she had before conceived of the Holy
Ghost.</p>

<p>Thus the eternal and only begotten Son of the living God
became a visible man subject to suffering. He was wrapped in
swaddling clothes, laid in a manger, and brought up at Nazareth
under the care of His [imputed] father and His mother. He
hungered, thirsted, was wearied with walking, sighed and wept,
and increased in wisdom and stature, and in favor with God and
man; so that the eternal, only begotten Son of the living God,
in the time of His incarnation, did not continue like His
heavenly Father in an invisible, impassive, immortal, and
spiritual form, but for our sakes, humbled Himself into a
visible, passive, mortal, and servile form, became like unto us
men in all things, except sin; in order thereby to heal us from
the poisonous bite of the serpent, and from everlasting
torment.</p>

<p>Hence, all true witnesses of Jesus Christ are bound, by
virtue of the holy Scriptures, to believe and confess: That
this same Word, which was in the beginning with God, and was
God, by which all things were made, proceeded from God His
Father, came into the world, and, through the power of God,
became Himself man or flesh, so that the glory of the only
begotten Son of the Father, full of grace and truth was touched
and seen.</p>

<p>Thus He who before was like unto His Father in brightness
and glory-not given or usurped Godlikeness, but one peculiar to
Him by nature-left His brightness and glory, and humbled
Himself, and became in form like unto us men; He who before was
greater than the angels, and in an invisible, immortal form,
like unto God His Father, was now made lower than the angels,
and became like unto His brethren in a visible and mortal form.
He who could have had joy with His Father, and was surrounded
by eternal riches, became poor for our sakes, and suffered on
the cross, despising the shame. He who in the presence of the
apostles ascended heavenward, was the same who before had
descended from God out of heaven into the lower parts of the
earth; and the same ascended above all heavens. This is the
mystery of godliness, which is great, but on account of their
carnal and flickering reason, is believed by but few: that God
the Son was thus manifest in the flesh; and that He appeared,
as a true Redeemer and Saviour, and eternal Light, to them who
sat in darkness and in the shadow of death.</p>

<p>And, as the food which the Israelites ate in the wilderness,
is called, bread from heaven or heavenly bread, because the
substance of the bread was no fruit of this earth, but had come
from heaven, though the same, was in this world, prepared in
the form of bread; so also Christ Himself calls His flesh the
true bread which came down f rom heaven; and says that the Son
of man should ascend up where He was before, because His flesh
or body became flesh, not of Mary or of any created substance,
but only of the Word of life which had come down from
heaven.</p>

<p>He it was who spake with Moses on the mount and in the
wilderness; and Him the fathers tempted in the wilderness, and
resisted His Spirit. This is the same who was from the
beginning. Him the</p>

</div><div id="388"> 

<p>apostles touched with their hands, and beheld with their
eyes; herein the life was manifested, that they saw and
proclaimed to men, that which was with the Father, and was
manifested unto them, and was even the same Word which spake
with them.</p>

<p>And though it is true that the eternal Son of the living God
forsook His divine glory, and, for a brief time, was made lower
than the angels, and appeared in the visible form of a servant;
yet He did not thereby lose His eternal Sonship and Godhead
with His Father; but when God the Father brought this His first
and only begotten Son into the world, He prepared Him a body,
not of any created substance, but only of the Word of life,
which became flesh, and which by all the angels of God is
honored and worshiped as the true God.</p>

<p>Likewise, Christ glorified Himself before His apostles, on
Mount Tabor, that His face shone as the bright sun, and He was
confessed by His Father from heaven as His beloved Son. Thus
have also the highly enlightened apostles of Christ, and all
true believers, confessed, pronounced, honored and worshiped
this visible and palpable Christ Jesus as the true God, and Son
of God. Hence all true believers, according to these
testimonies of holy Scripture, and the examples of all the
saints of God, must necessarily, unto salvation, follow,
believe, and confess, that the whole crucified Christ Jesus,
visible and invisible, mortal and immortal, is the true God,
and the Son of God, God and man in one undivided person. To
Him. be praise forever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>Of these promises concerning the Saviour, read, how God the
Lord, in the beginning promised fallen Adam and Eve, to put Him
as enmity between Satan and the woman, and between their
seed."And I will put enmity between thee and the woman, and
between thy seed and her seed; it shall bruise thy head, and
thou shalt bruise his heel." Gen. 3:15; Col. 1:19; 3:15; Eph.
2:15., "The Lord thy God will raise up unto thee a prophet from the
midst of thee, of thy brethren, like unto me; unto him ye shall
hearken." Deut. 18:15; Acts 7:37; Read also: Acts 3:25; Gal.
3:8; Genesis 49:10; Num. 24:17; Matt. 2:2; Jer. 23:5; 33:15;
Isa. 9:6; 11:1; Acts 10:43.</p>

<p>And that this Saviour of the world originally did not spring
from the fathers, Mary, or any creature, but was sent and came
only from God, and was conceived and brought forth by Mary,
read, "Behold, a virgin shall be with child, and shall bring
forth a son." Matt. 1:23; Isa. 7:14; Luke 2:21; Gal. 4:4."When
as his mother Mary was espoused to Joseph, before they came
together, she was found with child of the Holy Ghost." And
further, "Joseph, thou son of David, fear not to take unto thee
Mary thy wife: for that which is conceived in her is of the
Holy Ghost." Matt. 1:18, 20.</p>

<p>The angel of God said unto Mary, "Behold, thou shalt conceive
in thy womb, and bring forth a son, and shalt call his name
Jesus. He shall be great, and shall be called the Son of the
Highest; and the Lord God shall give unto him the throne of his
father David: and he shall reign over the house of Jacob
forever; and of his kingdom there shall be no end. Then said
Mary unto the angel, How shall this be, seeing I know not a
man? And the angel answered and said unto her, The Holy Ghost
shall come upon thee, and the power of the Highest shall
overshadow thee: therefore also that holy thing which shall be
born of thee shall be called the Son of God." Luke 1:30-35.</p>

<p>Read in this connection St. John, who also gives thorough
information regarding this matter, "In the beginning was the
Word, and the Word was with God, and the Word was God. The same
was in the beginning with God. And the Word was made flesh, and
dwelt among us (and we beheld his glory, the glory as of the
only begotten of the Father), full of grace and truth." John
1:1, 2, 14; Bar. 3:37; Zech. 2:10.</p>

<p>And further, "That which was from the beginning, which we
have heard, which we have seen with our eyes, which we have
looked upon, and our hands have handled, of the Word of life;
(for the life was manifested, and we have seen it, and bear
witness, and shew unto you that eternal life, which was with
the Father, and was manifested unto us,)" I John 1:1, 2; John
8:25; Micah 5:2; II Peter 1:16; John 20:28; Wisd. 18:15.</p>

<p>Of the humbling of the eternal and only Son of God, (Mark
especially the word <i>made;</i> for nowhere do we find
anything about assuming man) read, "Who, being in the form of
God, thought it not robbery to be equal with God: but
<i>made</i> himself of no reputation, and took upon him the
form of a servant, and was <i>made</i> in the likeness of
men</p>

<p>and being found in fashion as a man," etc. Phil. 2:6-8., "Thou madest him a little lower than the angels.""But we see
Jesus, who was made a little lower than the angels for the
suffering of death, crowned with glory and honor." Heb. 2:7, 9;
Ps. 8:5., "For ye know the grace of our Lord Jesus Christ, that,
though he was rich, yet for your sakes he became poor, that ye
through his poverty might be rich." II Cor. 8:9; Eccl.
9:15., "Looking unto Jesus the author and finisher of our faith;
who for the joy that was set before him endured the cross,
despising the shame," etc. Hebrews 12:2., "I am the living bread which came down from heaven: if any
man eat of this bread, he shall live forever: and the bread
that I will give is my flesh, <i>which I</i> will give for the
life of the world." John 6:51. Read also verses 58 and 63.</p>

<p>How the saints of God confessed and worshiped this
humiliated Jesus also in the days of His flesh, as the true
God, and the Son of God, read, "Whom do men say that I, the Son
of man, am?" And after a few more words, "Simon Peter answered
and said, Thou art the Christ, the Son of the living God."
Matt. 13:16. Understand, the true Son who was born and came
forth from the essence of the</p>

</div><div id="389"> 

<p>Father; and not a Son become so in time, or assumed, as
believers, who because of the faith, are also called sons and
daughters." II John 1:3; John 1:49; 10:36; 11:27; Acts 8:37;
Matt. 27:54.</p>

<p>Jesus said to the blind man, "Dost thou believe on the Son of
God? He answered and said, Who is he, Lord, that 1 might
believe on him? and Jesus said unto him, Thou hast both seen
him, and it is he that talketh with thee. And he said, Lord, I
believe. And he worshiped him." John 9:35-38., "Thomas answered and said unto him, My Lord and my God.
Jesus saith unto him, Thomas, because thou hast seen me, thou
hast believed," etc. John 20:28, 29., "In his Son Jesus Christ. This is the true God, and eternal
life. Little children, keep yourselves from idols. Amen." I
John 5:20, 21. Rom. 9:5.</p>

 
<h1>ARTICLE XV</h1>

<p><i>Of the knowledge of Jesus Christ, God and man in one
person, and the necessity of believing it.</i> Of this we
confess: That it is necessary for all Christians to believe
that the knowledge of the only Son of the Father, is, as one of
the principal articles of. our faith, in the highest degree
essential unto salvation. It is therefore not sufficient to
know Christ only after the flesh, or His humanity; as, that He
was born of Mary, and become like unto us in all things, except
sin; but we must also (which is the most important) know Him
after the Spirit, and His eternal Godhead; that is, that He
before all time, in eternity, in an unspeakable manner, was
born of or proceeded from the true God His Father, and that He
is the true real Word and Wisdom, which proceeded from the
mouth of the Most High, and which for this reason, was equal
with His Father in brightness, glory, power, might and eternal
Godhead, before the foundation of the world. And that this only
Son of God, for our justification, became a visible man, that
by His present, visible humanity-which is not of this
tabernacle or sinful substance, but in essence far different
from sinners-He might give us a holy, unblamable example in
doctrine and conversation, in order thus to incite all men to
follow Him.</p>

<p>And that according to His divine power and might He was able
to deliver us from the captivity of sin, hell, the devil, and
death, and save us forever; seeing no other means or name in
heaven or on earth is given unto men for salvation. To this
end, Christ was made unto us, of God, wisdom, and
righteousness, and sanctification, and redemption. Hence
neither Moses with his threatening and punishing law of
commandments, nor Aaron with the entire Levitical priesthood,
and all their sacrifices and offerings, which were made only
for remembrance of sins, and consequently, passed by polluted
mankind without affording them any help (for no corruptible man
could redeem his brother, and reconcile him with God; as all
human, sinful substance was not able to redeem the soul from
eternal death); but this was fulfilled and accomplished by the
slain Lamb, which was foreordained and was manifest in these
last times. He restored that which He had not taken away. He,
the innocent one, took the guilt of us all upon Him, and only
He was found worthy in heaven and earth, to open the book with
its seven seals. And by His coming into this world (which can
never be sufficiently praised), He opened the entrance to the
kingdom of God, which was closed by sin, not by the blood of
bulls and goats, or of any corruptible man, nor by corruptible
silver or gold; but Christ paid and accomplished this by His
own dear and precious blood, thereby obtaining an eternal
redemption.</p>

<p>And as the sun in the heavens is endowed by God with a
glorious splendor, so that it is the eye of the world, which
illuminates the darkness, and spreads its beautiful light over
all visible things, and receives nothing from any of them; so
also Christ Jesus, the true Sun of righteousness, and what is
still more, the Creator and Ruler of the sun, and of all
things, did not take to His assistance any created substance,
by which to accomplish the work of our salvation; but came with
His most praiseworthy light from God out of heaven, and shone
into this dark world, where He was received, and arose, as the
beautiful daystar, in the hearts of many men; and was thus a
Giver, but not a recipient. Hence, the praise and honor for
this redemption must be ascribed to the only God of heaven and
earth, and not to any created man; otherwise we would rob the
Creator of His proper honor, and ascribe the same to sinful,
created flesh like unto ourselves; thereby making flesh our
arm, Redeemer, God and Saviour; and thus departing with our
hearts from God our salvation, we should fall into damnable
,idolatry, seeking life from the dead, where it cannot be
found.</p>

<p>Herein we are to know the love and goodness, and also the
severity of God, and how greatly the Almighty God hates sin;
His severity and justice, from the fact, that through the one
sin of the first man, the whole human race became corrupted;
and that this could be paid and atoned for by no other means
than through the death and blood of God's own, only begotten
Son. God's goodness and everlasting love are known from this,
that He, the Blessed, so graciously looked upon and recognized,
the weakness and nothingness of man; and, hence, as He often
sent angels, as His faithful messengers, in human form to men,
upon the earth, knowing that this sinful, mortal, earthly flesh
and blood is not able to behold the immortal, heavenly glory of
the angels; much less can man with his sinful and mortal eyes
behold the immortal, eternal, holy splendor and glory of the
eternal Creator of all things; therefore- the eternal,
invisible and immortal Son of God, through His unfathomable
love, had Himself to become a visible, mortal man, for a little
while lower than the angels, and to appear in the form of a
servant, like unto His brethren; so that the glory of the
eternal and only begotten Son of God was felt and seen in
human</p>

</div><div id="390"> 

<p>form, that He might be a true example for us to follow His
footsteps. Herein we may especially know the love of Christ,
which passes knowledge</p>

<p>that the holy heavenly, only begotten, blessed Son of God,
Jesus Christ, became man, died and rose for us, when we were
yet ungodly and His enemies.</p>

<p>And though Christ suffered for us in the flesh, and was
crucified, and died; yet it was not possible that He should be
held by death, or that His holy flesh should see corruption.
But He had Himself the keys of death and hell, and the power to
open and to shut, to lay down His life, and to take it again;
and He it is that liveth, and was dead, and, behold, He is
alive forevermore.</p>

<p>Hence all true believers must believe that the true
knowledge of Jesus Christ, both of His true divinity, and pure,
immaculate humanity, is necessary to salvation. And to this,
life and eternal salvation are promised by the Holy Ghost; and
that Christ would build His church upon this foundation, and
that the gates of hell should not prevail against her. On the
other hand: that all unbelievers, who confess not that Jesus
Christ is come in the flesh (that is, that the Son of God
became man, and thus coming, appeared in the flesh), are not of
God, but of the spirit of antichrist, who began already in the
days of the Apostles, and is to exalt himself still more in the
last times.</p>

<p>Of the necessity of this knowledge of Jesus Christ,
read, "And this is life eternal, that they might know thee the
only true God, and Jesus Christ, whom thou hast sent." John
17:3; Hosea 13:4., "If ye had known me, ye should have known my Father also,"
etc. John 14:7., "Though we have known Christ after the flesh, yet now
henceforth know we him no more." II Cor. 5:16., "And that every tongue should confess that Jesus Christ is
Lord, to the glory of God the Father." Phil. 2:11; Rom. 14:11;
Col. 2:2; Phil. 3:8., "And Jesus said to Peter, after the latter had confessed and
pronounced the man Jesus, to be Christ, the Son of the living
God; Blessed art thou, Simon Bar-jona: for flesh and blood hath
not revealed it unto thee, but my Father which is in heaven.
And I say also unto thee, That thou art Peter, and .upon this
rock I will build my church; and the gates of hell shall not
prevail against it." Matt. 16:17, 18.</p>

<p>And after the apostle Thomas had confessed the visible and
palpable man Jesus as his Lord and God, Christ did not
reprehend him for it, but accepted it as the belief of the
truth, saying, "Thomas, because thou hast seen me, thou hast
believed</p>

<p>blessed are they that have not seen, and yet have believed."
John 20:29; 17:20; I Pet. 1:8.</p>

<p>Read in this connection the various Scripture passages, how
the apostles through the Holy Ghost, labored with all their
might, to impress on men, not that the eternal Son of God dwelt
concealed in the man Jesus; but, on the contrary, that the
visible man Jesus was the Christ; that is the Anointed and the
Saviour of the world, sent down from heav en; and to this, the
promise of life is given. Read"And many other signs truly did
Jesus in the pres ence of His disciples, which are not written
in thi; book: but these are written, that ye might believe that
Jesus is the Christ, the Son of God; and that believing ye
might have life through his name.' John 20:30, 31., "Whosoever shall confess that Jesus is the Son of God, God
dwelleth in him, and he in God." I John 4:15; I John 5:5; II
John 1:3; John 6:47., "Whosoever believeth that Jesus is the Christ is born of
God." I John 5:1, 5, 10; Acts 18:5, 28., "Who is a liar but he that denieth that Jesus is the Christ?
he is antichrist, that denieth the Father and the Son." I John
2:22., "Hereby know ye the Spirit of God: every spirit that
confesseth that Jesus Christ is come in the flesh [that is;
that the eternal Word became flesh, and being thus flesh, came
into his own] is of God: and every spirit that confesseth not
that Jesus Christ is come in the flesh is not of God</p>

<p>and this is that spirit of antichrist, whereof ye have heard
that it should come; and even now already is it in the world."
I John 4:2, 3; II John 1:7.</p>

<p>Read further, how we have been redeemed and bought by no
other means, than only by the death of the Son of God., "For- God so loved the world, that he gave his only begotten
Son," etc. John 3:16; Rom. 5:8., "For if, when we were enemies, we were reconciled to God by
the death of his Son," etc. Rom. 5:10; Heb. 5:9., "If God be for us, who can be against us? He that spared not
his own Son, but delivered him up for us all," etc. Rom. 8:31,
32; I John 3:16., "Ye know that ye were not redeemed with corruptible things,
as silver and gold, from your vain conversation received by
tradition from your fathers; but with the precious blood of
Christ, as of a lamb without blemish and without spot." I Pet.
1:18, 19., "In this was manifested the love of God toward us, because
that God sent his only begotten Son into the world, that we
might live through him." I John 4:9.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE XVI</h2> 

<p><i>Of the life, suffering, death, burial, resurrection, and
ascension of Jesus Christ, and of His again receiving His glory
with His Father.</i> Of this we confess: That the Lord Jesus,
in the time of His humiliation in the flesh, being
about:thirtythree years, did not only with words, but also by
works and deeds, set us a holy, godly example, to be looked to
as the Captain of the faith, by. all believers, and followed in
the regeneration; for in His youth He was subject to His father
and mother. And when His time was fulfilled, He entered in full
obedience toward His heavenly Father, on the office and
ministry imposed upon Him, pro-</p>

</div><div id="391"> 

<p>claimed unto them His Father's good pleasure, made the deaf
to hear, the dumb to speak, the blind to see, cleansed the
lepers, cast out devils, raised the dead from their graves,
forgave men their sins, and promised eternal life to those who
believe in Him.</p>

<p>These things Christ did not do in the same manner and form
as His apostles and others, who performed miracles through a
power and gift only received, which had been conferred upon and
given them by Christ. But such was not the case with Christ;
for He Himself had all power in heaven and earth; so that He
said to the two blind men, "Believe ye that I am able to do
this?" And further, "That ye may know that the Son of man hath
power on earth to forgive sins." And still further, "I will
raise them up at the last day; and I give unto them eternal
life."</p>

<p>Thus the Lord Jesus completely fulfilled and accomplished
the works of His Father, and shone as a clear heavenly light
into this dark world, convincing the same of her evil works,
and pointing them out to her; by which He incurred the hatred
of the blinded scribes and Pharisees, who did not know the
light of truth, and who, from hatred and envy, censured Him for
all these divine deeds, attributing them to the devil; and thus
they delivered this innocent one into the hands of the
unbelieving heathen, Pontius Pilate. They also examined this
dumb Lamb with many severe threats, mocked Him, spat in His
face, smote Him with their fists, scourged Him, wounded His
head with a crown of thorns, and finally stripped Him and
stretched Him naked on the cross, nailed His hands and feet
thereon, and thus suspended Him, as the Prince and Captain of
all malefactors, between two murderers. In His bitter thirst
they gave Him vinegar to drink, mixed with gall; they pierced
His side with a spear, so that blood and water flowed out
therefrom.. Thus He gave up the ghost with a loud voice,
commending it into the hands of His Father. And when He had
died, heaven and earth were convulsed by this precious death
and resurrection; so that the sun lost his brightness, and
darkness came over all the earth; the earth quaked; the vail of
the temple was rent in twain from the top to the bottom; and
many bodies of the saints arose from their graves, and went
into the holy city, and appeared unto many.</p>

<p>And as in the time of His flesh, suffering and death, He
showed that He had become man, so He also showed herein that
this very man was also true God with His Father; and that He
had the keys of the power of death and hell, that He could
again raise up the broken temple of His body in three days, and
had the power to lay down His life, and to take it up again; so
that it was impossible, that He should be held by death, or
that His holy flesh should see corruption, but rose
triumphantly from the dead, on the third day, by the glory of
the Father, revealed Himself to His apostles and others, and
miraculously appeared unto hem, as they were assembled with
doors closed, ate and drank with them, and for forty days spake
with them of many things pertaining to the kingdom of God.
Then, in the presence of the apostles, He was taken up to
heaven by a cloud, and sat down on the right hand of His
Almighty Father in heaven.</p>

<p>Thus the only begotten Son of God suffered, was crucified
and put to death according to the flesh; but thereby was again
glorified and made alive according to the spirit, and again
fully received His previous divine glory, and His equality with
the Father. He will now die no more neither will death have any
more dominion over Him; but He shall live and rule as a
reigning King of kings, and Lord of lords over Mount Zion and
the house of Jacob, forever and ever.</p>

<p>Of the unblamable life and conversation of Christ, and how
He was subject to His father and mother, read: Luke 2:51; John
8:46; Acts 1:1.</p>

<p>And after His time was fulfilled, how He entered on the
ministry imposed upon Him, and performed many glorious deeds in
His Father's name, read</p>

<p>Mark 1:15; Matt. 8:16; 9:35; 11:5; 12:15; John 10; Acts
10:38; Isa. 53:7; I Pet. 2:24.</p>

<p>And how He, as a light in the world, testified of their dark
and evil works, and thus fell into the hands of sinners,
read, "The world cannot hate you; but me it hateth, because I
testify of it, that the works thereof are evil." John 7:7; 1:5;
3:19; Matt. 27:18.</p>

<p>How Christ in the time of His humiliation in the flesh was
obedient to His heavenly Father, read, "He humbled himself, and became obedient unto death, even
the death of the cross." Phil. 2:8., "Though he were a Son, yet learned he obedience by the
things which he suffered." Heb. 5:8.</p>

<p>Of the suffering, death, and burial of Christ, read: Ps.
22:16; 60:9, 21; Isa. 53:7; 63:3; Acts 8:32; Matt. 27; Mark 15;
Luke 23; John 19;Acts 3:15; I Cor. 15:4, 20; Matt. 27:57; Isa.
53:9.</p>

<p>Of the resurrection of Christ, read: Matt. 28:7; Mark 16:6;
Luke 24:7; I Cor. 15:4, 20; Acts 3:26; 10:40.</p>

<p>How Christ again received the divine glory and likeness
which He had forsaken; and how He ascended unto heaven,
read, "And Jesus came and spake unto them, saying, All power is
given unto me in heaven and in earth." Matt. 28:18; Ps.
8:6., "Ought not Christ to have suffered these things, and to
enter into his glory?" Luke 24:26., "Thou madest him a little lower than the angels; thou
crownedst him with glory and honor, and didst set him over the
works of thy hands: thou hast put all things in subjection
under his feet." Heb. 2:7-9; John 17:5., "The God of our fathers raised up Jesus, whom ye slew and
hanged on a tree. Him hath God exalted with his right hand to
be a Prince and a Saviour," etc. Acts 5:30, 31; Phil. 2:9; Acts
2:33, 36., "And when he had spoken these things, while they beheld, he
was taken up; and a cloud received</p>

</div><div id="392"> 

<p>him out of their sight. And while they looked steadfastly
toward heaven as he went up," etc. Acts 1:9,10; Mark 16:19;
Luke 24:51.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE XVII</h2> 

<p><i>Of the office of Christ, and the specific reason of His
coming into the world.</i> We confess: That Christ is the true
promised Prophet, High Priest, and King, whom Moses and all the
prophets foretold and proclaimed, and to whom the former
priests and kings pointed as figures and shadows. And the
specific reason of His coming into the world was: to destroy
the works of the devil, to seek that which was lost, to deliver
the whole human race from the captivity of sin, and the power
of the devil, and to reconcile them with God His Father, and
thus to save sinners.</p>

<p>According to His prophetical office he went out from God,
and came into the world to proclaim unto men, through the
Gospel, the full counsel and will of God, which had been hid
from the beginning of the world, and thus to preach deliverance
to the captives, the Gospel to the poor, and the acceptable
year of the Lord, according to which, as the last declaration
and will of God, all the children of the New Covenant are
required to live and walk, according to a perfect rule of
faith, which shall obtain until the end of the world.</p>

<p>According to His office as High Priest He fulfilled and
changed the Levitical priesthood; and by His one offering made
on the cross, He opened the closed entrance to the Holy of
holies; and through this His one offering, which is of eternal
value, He fulfilled and finished the sacrifice of the law, and
obtained an eternal redemption. And thus reconciling mankind
with the Father, He sat down on the right hand of the Majesty
in heaven, and is become the believers' only Advocate,
Mediator, High Priest, and Intercessor with God His Father, and
ever lives to make intercession for them.</p>

<p>And according to His office as King He came with full power
from His almighty Father from heaven, to re-establish, as a
mighty King of kings, and commander of the people, judgment and
righteousness on earth; and He was the end and fulfillment of
all kings of Israel: But as His kingdom was not of this world,
and He was a spiritual, heavenly King, He avoided all earthly
kingdoms of this world, and desired and had only a spiritual,
heavenly kingdom. Among His subjects He reformed, improved and
fulfilled the commandments, laws, and customs, given by Moses.
As a commanding King He dissuaded and prohibited His followers
from all revenge, whether with words or by deed; [and taught
them] that they should beat their swords into ploughshares, and
their spears into scythes and sickles, and should learn war no
more; but that, on the contrary, they, according to the example
of Christ, their Captain, should love their enemies, and pray
for those who injure and persecute them-very far indeed from
allowing hem to wage war against their enemies with carnal
weapons. But Christ armed His people only with the armor of
God, and the sword of the Spirit, which is the Word of God,
with which to fight against flesh and blood, the world, sin,
and the manifold wiles of the devil, and thus finally to
receive, through grace, from this eternal King, the crown of
everlasting life, as their recompense and exceeding great
reward.</p>

<p>How Christ is the prophet promised by God, whom we must hear
and follow as the perfect teacher of the will of God, read, "The
Lord thy God will raise up unto thee a prophet from the midst
of thee, of thy brethren, like unto me; unto him ye shall
hearken." Deut. 18:15; Acts 7:37; 3:22; Matt. 17:5., "We have also a more sure word of prophecy; whereunto ye do
well that ye take heed, as unto a light that shineth in a dark
place." II Pet. 1:19., "God, who at sundry times and in divers manners spake in
time past unto the fathers by the prophets, hath in these last
days spoken unto us by his Son," etc. Heb. 1:1, 2.</p>

<p>Of His prophecies, read: Matt. 24 throughout; Luke 17:20;
19:41-44.</p>

<p>Of His priestly office, read, "And having a high priest over
the house of God; let us draw near with a true heart in full
assurance of faith," etc. Hebrews 10:21, 22., "For the priesthood being changed, there is made of
necessity a change alsb of the law." Heb. 7:12; 8:6; 10:12., "But Christ being come a high priest of good things to
come," etc. Heb. 9:11.</p>

<p>Of His preaching, read: Matt. 9:35; Mark 1:14; Matt. 5:2;
11:1; Luke 4:15.</p>

<p>Of His office of King, read, "Rejoice greatly, O daughter of
Zion; shout, O daughter of Jerusalem; behold, thy King cometh
unto thee," etc. Zech. 9:9; Matt. 21:5., "Behold, the days come, that I will raise unto David a
righteous Branch, and a King shall reign and prosper, and shall
execute judgment and justice in the earth." Jer. 23:5; 33:15;
Isa. 32:1., "Rabbi, thou art the Son of God; thou art the King of
Israel." John 1:49; Acts 10:36; II Cor. 4:5; Phil. 2:11.</p>

<p>Of His spiritual kingdom and dominion, read, "And the Lord
God shall give unto him the throne of his father David: and he
shall reign over the house of Jacob forever; and of his kingdom
there shall be no end." Luke 1:32, 33., "For he is Lord of lords, and King of kings and they that
are with him are called, and chosen, and faithful." Rev.
17:14., "But ye are a chosen generation, a royal priesthood," etc. I
Pet. 2:9; Ex. 19:6; Rev. 5:10; John 18:36, 37; Ps. 22:28.</p>

<p>Of His government, read, "Behold, I have given him for a
witness to the people, a leader and commander to the people."
Isa. 55:4.</p>

</div><div id="392">
<p>"There is one lawgiver, who is able to save and to destroy,"
etc. Jas. 4:12; I Cor. 9:21; Matthew 12:8; 28:20; Jas.
1:25.</p> 

<h2>ARTICLE XVIII</h2> 

<p><i>Of the church of God and the communion of believers.</i>
Concerning this we believe and confess: Whereas men by reason
of the natural birth of the flesh, follow sin and wickedness
when they attain to their understanding, and thereby depart
from God their Creator; therefore the high and holy God, before
whom the sinners and ungodly cannot stand, from the beginning
of the world, called and chose, from all the unbelieving
nations of the world, an own special people, and separated them
from all other nations. These are they who turn their ears to
the calling voice of God, and thereby have separated themselves
from the world with all its sinful lusts, and all false
worship, and have again united themselves to Christ, bowing, as
obedient members and sheep of Jesus Christ, under His head and
commanding voice, and shunning everything strange which
militates against this. These are they who are renewed in the
inward man, and are circumcised, changed, and converted, and
live after the Spirit.</p>

<p>This church of God was first commenced on earth, with Adam
and Eve in paradise, and afterwards, with Enoch, Noah, and all
those who with them honored and called upon the high name of
God; which was the first period of time, that is, before the
law.</p>

<p>After this God the Lord established His covenant or church
with Abraham and his seed, giving them circumcision as a sign
of the covenant, together with many laws, ceremonies, statutes,
and customs; which continued till the coming of Christ, and was
the second period, or the time of the law of Moses.</p>

<p>Finally'God sent His Son, who, as a potentate in heaven and
earth, established a new and perfect covenant with the house of
Israel, calling to the same all the Gentiles and nations of the
earth, all those who amend their sinful life, and obediently
yield their bodies under this covenant. With all these Christ
has established His church and congregation; this is the third
and last period, which shall thus continue, without change in
faith, walk, and laws, until the reappearing of Christ from
heaven.</p>

<p>And though the people of God in these three periods, had
different and special laws and ceremonies, according to which
they had to live and walk; yet this was the will of God, and
they were nevertheless only one people of God, and were moved
and led by one Spirit.</p>

<p>This church and congregation of believers has not always
been visible .to the eyes of all men, but has frequently
vanished from the sight of the sinful and bloodthirsty world,
the latter not being worthy of them. This can be seen in the
case of Noah with his families in the ark, who concealed
hemselves from the whole world; in the people of Israel in the
Red Sea, and here and there during the forty years in the
wilderness; in the pious in Judah, from the bloody sword of
Manasseh; and in all the God-fearing in Israel from the awful
threats of Jezebel. Thus also the bride of the Lamb, the church
of Jesus Christ, had to hide herself in the wilderness,
forty-two months, or three times and a half a time,* from the
abominable beast of antichrist, which with his tyrannical sword
and burning, exalted itself above everything which is called
and worshiped as God. Afterwards, through the grace of God, she
again came to the light, and was built upon the first, ancient
apostolical foundation.</p>

<p>And as Solomon's temple was destroyed, and the second
building continued until the first coming of Christ in the
flesh, so we hold that the church of Jesus Christ, rebuilt upon
the foundation of the apostles and prophets, shall also
continue openly in the light until the second coming of Christ
from heaven.</p>

<p>This church of God, that is, all believers, are, as members
of one body, joined together by faith and the bond of love;
they are like-minded one toward another according to Christ
Jesus; they live according to the same rule of the divine word,
and are bound together by the same love, thus having fellowship
with one another. Those whom God has blessed with spiritual
gifts, minister with them to the souls of their neighbors, out
of love. And those whom God has provided with temporal
possessions, minister with them to the temporal needs of their
neighbors; thus showing that they have their temporal and
spiritual goods in common, and suffer no want in spiritual and
temporal gifts. This church of God has existed on the earth
from the beginning of the world, either in greater or in
smaller numbers, secretly or openly, and shall thus continue
unto the end of the world, and Christ will be with her, with
His Spirit, always.</p>

<p>Of the Christian church, that is, of all believing
regenerated persons, gathered and purified by the holy Spirit,
read, "The Lord thy God hath chosen thee to be a special people
unto himself, above all people that are upon the face of the
earth." Deuteronomy 7:6; 14:2; 26:18; I Pet. 2:9., "And among all the multitude of peoples thou host gotten
thee one people: and unto this people, whom thou lovedst, thou
gayest a law that is approved of all." II Esd. 5:27.</p>

<p>How the church of God, which is built upon Christ, must be
subject, as members to their head, read, "And upon this rock
(Christ) I will build my church; and the gates of hell shall
not prevail against it." Matt. 16:18; 28:20., "Husbands, love your wives, even as Christ also loved the
church, and gave himself for it; that he might sanctify and
cleanse it with the washing of</p>

<br /><cite>* Understand, taking each time for a great year,
there are as many years as there are days in three years and a
half; which is abort 1260 years. Num. 14:34; Ezek. 4:5.</cite> 

</div><div id="394"> 

<p>water by the word, that he might present it to himself a
glorious church, not having spot, or wrinkle, or any such
thing; but that it should be holy and without blemish." Eph.
5:25-27, 29, 32; 1:22., "That thou mayest know how thou oughtest to behave thyself
in the house of God, which is the church of the living God, the
pillar and ground of the truth." I Tim. 3:15; Eph. 2:20; 4:16;
Hebrews 12:23.</p>

<p>Of the fellowship of believers, read, "But if we walk in the
light, as he is in the light, we have fellowship one with
another, and the blood of Jesus Christ his Son, cleanseth us
from all sin." I John 1:7., "They continued steadfastly in the apostles' doctrine and
fellowship." Acts 2:42; 4:34; I Cor. 12:12; Gal. 3:28; John
17:21.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE XIX</h2> 

<p><i>0 f the signs of the church of God, by which it may be
distinguished from all other peoples,</i> we confess the
following: In the first place, all true Christians are known by
the only saving faith, which works by love. It is wrought,
through the grace of God, in the heart of man by the hearing of
the Word of God, and hence, is not founded and built upon human
decrees, but upon the Word of God alone; and it works so
effectually that by it we are drawn and impelled from all
visible things and sinful lusts of this world to the invisible
God and His heavenly riches.</p>

<p>Secondly. All true children of God are known by the second
or new birth, from above, of God; which is wrought by the
Spirit of God internally in the heart, through the putting off
of the sinful lusts of the flesh; so that, as man, through his
first birth of the flesh, brings forth his human nature and
mind; so, through regeneration, he becomes a partaker of the
divine nature, by which he is also to bring forth godly and
spiritual fruits, and the mind of Christ Jesus.</p>

<p>Thirdly. The church, or the believers, are known by the good
works which they evince as fruits of gratitude from their
faith; which may not be done according to human instructions,
in a self-selected holiness, but in which we follow Christ and
His apostles, as they prescribed and walked. And with these
divine virtues all true believers must be clothed, that, as a
light on the candlestick, and a city on a hill, they may excel
and shine among all men, and may be known thereby, as a good
tree is known and distinguished by its good fruits.</p>

<p>Fourthly. The church of God is known by the glorious
appellations by which she is described and honored by the Holy
Spirit, as a city and temple of the living God, in which God
will dwell and walk; the bride of the Lamb, the daughter of
Zion; a chaste virgin, joined to Christ by faith; so that, even
as with all cities which are subject to the command of their
Lord and king, and it may thereby properly be known, under
whose power and dominion they belong, so also the church of God
is known by this that she recognizes and obeys Christ Jesus as
her only Head and King, in all matters of faith, and observes
His commandments. And as a pure virgin and bride forsakes
father, mother, and all strange company and subjects herself to
the will and obedience of her only bridegroom; so all true
children of God must separate themselves from all false
worship, flee from the stranger's voice, and unite themselves
to Christ, to hear and obediently follow His voice, which is
proclaimed by the ministers sent by Him.</p>

<p>Fifthly. The people of God are known by their faithful
ministers, who, according to the doctrine of Paul, are
unblamable in doctrine and life, and feed the sheep of Christ,
not for the milk and wool, but with a willing mind, with
knowledge and understanding;.speaking not their own words, but
only the words of their Lord, and executing His work; rightly
dividing and dispensing the Word of God, and bringing forth
fruits with it; in order that through this good message of the
ways of the Lord men might, according to the counsel and will
of God, be converted from their evil ways, and won to God.</p>

<p>Sixthly, and lastly. All true disciples of Jesus Christ are
known by the unfeigned godly love, which our Saviour Himself
has put as a sign, by which His disciples should be specially
known; which is comprehended in these things: That we love the
Lord God our Creator with all our heart and strength, above all
other things, which consists principally in the keeping of His
commandments. And besides: That we love our brethren or
neighbors as ourselves, not only in word or tongue, but in deed
and in truth; so that those to whom God has given spiritual
gifts, minister therewith, from love, to the souls of their
neighbors; and those whom God has blessed with temporal
possessions, minister therewith unto the temporal needs of
their neighbors, in order that thus among this true Israel of
God, there may be found no poor, nor any lack in spiritual or
temporal things. Finally, we must show charity to all men,
though they be our open enemies, who persecute and kill us,
whom we may by no means resist with carnal weapons; but, as
Christ did not open His mouth in revenge upon His enemies, but,
as an humble and dumb lamb, prayed for them, so we must also
follow this infallible example. And as all soldiers forsake
their former avocation, and wear the livery of their lord and
king, as a sign to distinguish them from all strange servants,
and that they are bound to their captain even unto death; so
also, must all true servants of Jesus Christ be armed with the
aforesaid marks, that thereby they may be known and
distinguished from all other people.</p>

<p>Where, therefore, men believe with the heart, in the Father,
the Son, and the Holy Ghost, and in the incarnation,
justification or redemption, suffering, death, resurrection,
and ascension of Jesus Christ, and the resurrection of the dead
and the eternal judgment; and where, besides, the ordi-</p>

</div><div id="395"> 

<p>nances of the Lord, as baptism, Supper, separation, and the
like, are rightly observed, according to Scripture, and Christ
is followed therein, in the clean fear of the Lord, and in the
regenerationthere is the city and church of the living God, the
pillar and firm ground of the truth, the tabernacle of God with
men, in which God will dwell and walk with His Spirit. Such a
body [church] has Christ for its Head, Preserver, and Saviour.
But where said marks do not exist, and where the ordinances of
men are the rule of action, there is no church of God, but a
vain boasting of the same.</p>

<p>How the true faith is to be known, read, "So then faith
cometh by hearing, and hearing by the word of God." Rom.
10:17., "He that believeth on me, as the scripture bath said, out of
his belly shall flow rivers of living water." John 7:28., "That your faith should not stand in the wisdom of men, but
in the power of God." I Cor. 2:5., "For in Jesus Christ neither circumcision availeth anything,
nor uncircumcision; but faith which worketh by love." Gal. 5:6;
Heb. 11:1; Hab. 2:4; Heb. 10:38; Rom. 1:17.</p>

<p>How the children of God are to be known by regeneration or
the new birth, read, "Being born again, not of corruptible seed,
but of incorruptible, by the word of God, which liveth and
abideth forever." I Pet. 1:23., "Jesus said unto them, Verily I say unto you, That ye which
have followed me, in the regeneration when the Son of man shall
sit in the throne of his glory, ye also shall sit upon twelve
thrones, judging the twelve tribes of Israel." Matt. 19:28., "For in Christ Jesus neither circumcision availeth anything,
nor uncircumcision, but a new creature." Gal. 6:15; John 3:8;
II Cor. 5:17.</p>

<p>How the true members of Christ are. to be known from their
godly conversation, read, "Every tree that bringeth not forth
good fruit is hewn down, and cast into the fire. Wherefore by
their fruits ye shall know them. Not every one that with unto
me, Lord, Lord, shall enter into the kingdom of heaven; but he
that doeth the will of my Father which is i heaven." Matt.
7:19-21; 5:16; 12:50; john 15:1; Sir. 19:24., "Do all things without murmuring and disputings: that ye may
be blameless and harmless, the sons of God, without rebuke, in
the midst of a crooked and perverse nation, among whom ye shine
as lights in the world; holding forth the word of life." Phil.
2:14-16., "Little children, let no man deceive you: he that doeth
righteousness is righteous, even as he is righteous. He that
committeth sin is of the devil." I John 3:7, 8.</p>

<p>How the people of God are to be known from this that they
have separated themselves from all other people, and put
themselves under Christ their Head, hearing only His voice, and
observing His commandments, read, "Wherefore, my dearly beloved,
flee from idolatry. Ye cannot drink the cup of the Lord, and
the cup of devils: ye cannot be partakers of the Lord's table,
and of the table of devils." I Cor. 10:14, 21., "Be ye not unequally yoked together with unbelievers: for
what fellowship hath righteousness with unrighteousness? and
what communion hath light with darkness? Wherefore come out
from among them, and be ye separate saith the Lord, and touch
not the unclean thing." II Cor. 6:14, 17; Rev. 18:4; Isa.
52:11; Jer. 15:19; 51:6., "As I said unto you, My sheep hear my voice, and I know
them, and they follow me. And a stranger will they not follow,
but will flee from him; for they know not the voice of
strangers." John 10:26, 27, 5., "Teaching them to observe all things whatsoever I have
commanded you." Matt. 28:20; II Thess. 2:15; John 8:31; 14:21;
15:10; Matt. 11:28; I John 3:7.</p>

<p>How the false prophets are to be known and distinguished
from the true servants of Jesus Christ, read, "Beware of false
prophets, which come to you in sheep's clothing, but inwardly
they are ravening wolves. Ye shall know them by their fruits."
Matt. 7:15, 16; Dent. 13:1., "He that speaketh of himself seeketh his own glory: but he
that seeketh his glory that sent him, the same is true, and no
unrighteousness is in him." John 7:18., "For he whom God hath sent speaketh the words of God." John
3:34; 8:31; I Pet. 4:11., "But if they had stood in my counsel, and had caused my
people to hear my words, then they should have turned them from
their evil way, and from the evil of their doings." Jer. 23:22,
31; Isa. 55:11; Matt. 23 throughout; Col. 1:6; read also Tit.
1:6; I Tim. 3 throughout.</p>

<p>How Christians are to be known by their love, read, "A new
commandment I give unto you, That ye love one another; as I
have loved you, that ye also love one another. By this shall
all men know that ye are my disciples, if ye have love one to
another." John 13:34, 35; I John 3:23., "In this the children of God are manifest, and the children
of the devil: whosoever doeth not righteousness is not of God,
neither he that loveth not his brother." I John 3:10; 15:12;
Matt. 22:39; Eph. 5:2; I Pet. 1:22; II Pet. 1:7.</p>

 
<h1>ARTICLE XX</h1>

<p><i>Of the ordinances of the church of God, and the sending
and electing of ministers.</i> Of this we confessed: That, as a
house, city, or country cannot subsist unless it have laws and
ordinances by which to be governed and upheld, and as no human
body can subsist without the members performing the service
appointed by God for the needs of the body; so also, God the
Lord has appointed in His church divers ordinances, laws and
commandments, by which it is to be built up, edified, and
improved.</p>

<p>And, as the necessities of the body require, as its chief
and most indispensable members, eyes,</p>

</div><div id="396"> 

<p>mouth, hands, and feet, to see, speak, and labor for the
body, that it may thereby be fed and sustained; so Christ the
Lord ordained as necessary in His church, first, by His own,
present, commanding voice, His apostles, whom He sent out to
preach the Gospel among all nations, and to teach them to
observe His commandments, which He caused to be confirmed by
signs and miracles.</p>

<p>This the apostles, through the Holy Spirit again enjoined
upon their followers; namely, that they should elect, in the
church, pastors, teachers, helpers and rulers, who as fit
shining stars, by their good walk and sound doctrine, should
shine to edification in the spiritual firmament, and, as
messengers of peace, proclaim the good new tidings everywhere,
that thereby men may be turned from their evil ways, added to
the church, and thus the body of Christ be perfected and
edified.</p>

<p>And since it is a known fact that a lack of faithful
ministers, and the erring of the sheep because of the lack of
good doctrine, arise principally from the unworthiness of the
people; therefore the people of God, needing this, should not
turn to such as have been educated in universities, according
to the wisdom of man, that they may talk and dispute, and seek
to sell their purchased gift for temporal gain; and who
according to the custom of the world do not truly follow Christ
in the humility of regeneration. But the true members of
Christ, must, according to the counsel of God, with humble
fasting and praying, turn to the Father of the harvest, who is
the true Sender, that by His divine wisdom He will raise up
men, whom He may set as faithful and wise stewards over His
household, that they may give them proper meat in due season,
and may enkindle them in their hearts with His Spirit, and urge
them into His harvest, that they may feed the flock of Christ,
not for the milk and wool, but of a ready mind, with knowledge
and understanding, and lead them on the right way to the
kingdom of God; and thus execute the ministry imposed upon them
by God, with the strength which God gives.</p>

<p>Hence, believers who are in need, in this respect, shall,
after having sought the face of God with ardent prayer, turn
their eyes to a pious brother, who keeps under his own body,
and brings it into subjection, and in whom the fruits of the
Holy Spirit are perceived and seen. Having been chosen thereto
by the voice of the Church, he shall be examined in the faith
by the elder and pastors of the church, whether he, according
to the Word of God, agrees with the church in every article,
that he may teach others the way of truth, which he himself
knows. And having been found to be sound, he may stand forth in
the name of the Lord, to proclaim the will of God unto the
people. And when it has thus been found that God has committed
the preaching, of the Gospel to him so that he rightly divides
the Word of God, and brings forth fruits with it, the church,
if she require it, and he, after examination, has been found,
according to the Word of God, to be of the same faith with the
church, may, by the voice of the church, choose him as an elder
and teacher in the full ministry, and cause him to be confirmed
by the imposition of the hands of the elders, and ordain him to
labor and work in the vineyard of the Lord, and to administer
and execute Christian baptism, and the Lord's Supper, with all
that pertains thereto.</p>

<p>In like manner, the church shall, by the voice of the
church, elect deacons over the poor, and, after they have been
examined in the faith, and found to be sound, cause them to be
confirmed by the imposition of the hands of the elders, as
helpers and governors, that willing givers may give their
contributions to them, that they may thereby supply the wants
of the poor members of Christ who according to their ability
diligently labor and work with their hands, and still are not
able to support themselves; that there may be found no poor
among the people of God, nor any want in temporal things, and
that the good gifts of the donor may be hidden from men, but
become manifest before God, according to the doctrine of
Christ.</p>

<p>And if any of said ministers depart in faith or conversation
from the adopted way of truth, the church which elected him
when he was pious and sound, shall punish or remove him,
according as his deeds deserve. Matt. 18:8; I Tim. 1:20.</p>

<p>Of the ordinances of the church of Christ, read, "Joying and
beholding your order, and the steadfastness of your faith in
Christ." Col. 2:5; I Cor. 11:33; 14:40; II Cor. 8:19.</p>

<p>How men are to pray to God, who is the true Sender, for
faithful laborers, read, "The harvest truly is plenteous, but
the laborers are few; pray ye therefore the Lord of the
harvest, that he will send forth laborers into his harvest."
Matt. 9:37, 38; Luke 10:2; Matt. 23:34; Luke 11:49; John 13:20;
Matt. 10:40; Luke 10:16; Matt. 25:14; Luke 19:12; John
20:21.</p>

<p>How necessary these ministers are, and how they shall teach
the Word of God, and be qualified, read, "Let the Lord, the God of the spirits of all flesh, set a
man over the congregation, which may go out before them, and
which may go in before them, and which may lead them out, and
which may bring them in; that the congregation of the Lord be
not as sheep which have no shepherd." Num. 27:16, 17., "I will give you pastors according to mine heart, which
shall feed you with knowledge and understanding." Jer.
3:15., "For him whom God hath sent, speaketh the words of God,"
etc. John 3:34; 7:18., "If any man speak, let him speak as the oracles of God; if
any man minister, let him do it as of the ability which God
giveth;that God in all things may be glorified through Jesus
Christ," etc. I Pet. 4:11., "Far the prophecy came not in old time by the will of man;
but holy men of God spake as they were moved by the Holy
Ghost." II Peter 1:21.</p>

</div><div id="396">
<p>"For this cause left I thee in Crete, that thou shouldst set
in order the things that are wanting, and ordain elders in
every city, as I had appointed thee: if any be blameless," etc.
Tit. 1:5, 6.</p> 

<p>Of their qualifications, and how they are to minister after
their examination, read: I Tim. 3 throughout; I Cor. 12:28;
Rom. 12:7; Eph. 4:11.</p>

<p>Concerning the mode in which they are to be chosen, read, "We
have sent with him the brother, whose praise is in the Gospel
throughout all the churches; and not that only, but who was
also chosen of the churches to travel with us, with this grace,
which is administered by us to the glory of the same Lord, and
declaration of your ready mind." I I Cor. 8:18, 19; Acts
1:23., "As they ministered to the Lord, and fasted, the Holy Ghost
said, Separate me Barnabas and Saul for the work whereunto I
have called them. And when they had fasted and prayed and laid
their hands on them, they sent them away." Acts 13:2, 3;
20:28., "The things that thou bast heard of me among many witnesses,
the same commit thou to faithful men, who shall be able to
teach others also." II Tim. 2:2., "Feed the flock of God which is among you, taking the
oversight thereof, not by constraint, but willingly, not for
filthy lucre, but of a ready mind; neither as being lords over
God's heritage, but being ensamples to the flock." I Pet. 5:2,
3.</p>

<p>Of the election and confirmation of deacons, read, "It is not
reason that we should leave the Word of God, and serve tables.
Wherefore brethren, look ye out among you seven men of honest
report, full of the Holy Ghost and wisdom, whom we may appoint
over this business.""Whom they set before the apostles: and
when they had prayed, they laid their hands on them." Acts 6:2,
3, 6; I Tim. 3:8-10.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE XXI</h2> 

<p><i>Of Christian baptism</i> we confess: That the same is a
divine, evangelical transaction, practice and ordinance, which
was first commenced by the man of God, John the Baptist, by the
counsel and will of God, and was received by the worthy Son of
God, Christ Jesus, who humbled Himself as a true example, and
to whom the aforesaid John led and pointed with His doctrine
and baptism, as being the true Baptizer with the Holy Ghost and
with fire. He proceeded and came from God with full power in
heaven and earth, and sent out His apostles, commanding them to
preach the Gospel to all nations, and to baptize all true
hearers and believers of it, in the name of the Father, the
Son, and the Holy Ghost, and to teach them, before and after
baptism, to observe all things which He had commanded them.</p>

<p>This the apostles of Christ, as obedient ministers of God,
practiced according to this manner, beginning at Jerusalem, and
preaching the Gospel in every country. And all who heard,
believed and gladly received this heavenly doctrine were made
disciples and followers, and were baptized with water, in the
name of the triune God, and thus entered into covenant with
Christ, to observe whatsoever He had commanded them.</p>

<p>And inasmuch as the doctrines and commandments of Christ are
not instituted for a certain time, but are commanded to be kept
until the appearing of Jesus Christ from heaven; and as He will
continue with His Spirit to the end of the world with His
followers; therefore all believers and followers of Christ are
bound in no wise, to alter or reject according to human
opinions, these doctrines and commandments which God has
commanded; but to practice and observe them constantly
according to the form and institution of Christ, and the
practice of His highly enlightened apostles; to preach the
Gospel to the people; and all who believe the same, manifest
repentance from sin and amendment of life, and submit to the
will of God, shall, by an unblamable minister ordained to this
purpose, be baptized once with water, in the name of the
Father, and the Son, and the Holy Ghost.</p>

<p>This outward baptism with water does not properly constitute
the entrance to the kingdom of God, nor does the visible
element of the water contain any power or holiness; neither is
it able to give any grace and salvation; but, as the waters of
Jordan and Siloam did not, properly speaking, heal leprosy and
blindness, but only the power of God, to which they were herein
subject and obedient, so also the water in baptism has no power
to forgive our sins, and to cleanse the filthiness of our
flesh, but is simply a token and proof of the grace and blood
of Christ in the washing away of sin, which man, through faith
and regeneration, by grace, has received, in the heart, before
baptism, in putting off the body of the sins of the flesh,
which is proclaimed in baptism;. and without this internal
baptism with the Holy Ghost and with fire, the external,
visible, water baptism is as useless and vain, as the seal on
an empty letter.</p>

<p>Since, then, Christian baptism is of such a nature that it
was ordained and commanded by Christ only upon faith,
repentance, and reformation, and was practiced and taught by
His high apostles in this, and in no other wise; therefore we
herewith reject, with good reason, the baptism of
unintelligent, speechless infants, which we regard as a human
institution, etc.,* which ought justly to be rooted out and
rejected. The principal originators of the same found this
their infant baptism upon the fall of Adam, sayingt that
thereby all men are born and placed into the world in-an
unsaved and condemned state, and that by the power of water
baptism they are translated and changed from this unsaved and
condemned state into a saved and Godpleasing condition; thus
binding not only the sal-</p>

<br /><cite>*"Invented in the kingdom of antichrist;" says
the writer.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* This is an expression of the belief of the
papists, who attach forgiveness of sins and salvation to the
external water of baptism.</cite> 

</div><div id="398"> 

<p>vation and condemnation of infants, but also the saving
grace, death and atonement, of Christ to the willingness or
unwillingness of man, and the weak element of water; so that
when an infant is baptized it is instantly saved, and when this
is neglected, it dies condemned.</p>

<p>Who that fears God can in any wise accept with a good
conscience this human infant baptism, instead of the ordinance
of God, since in the whole New Testament not the least is
commanded or written concerning it, either by Christ or by His
apostles.</p>

<p>The pedobaptists themselves plainly confess, that in the
sending forth of the apostles into the whole world by Christ,
to teach and baptize, infant baptism is not commanded, nor
comprehended in these passages; neither is there any advocate
of the same able to point out in the Word of God the author and
first foundation of infant baptism (though every divine
ordinance has its beginning where it was first commanded by
God)-how then shall this fabric of infant baptism, of which no
foundation can be found, stand in the sight of God?</p>

<p>Infant baptism is in fact nothing less than a contemning and
trampling under foot of the true baptism of Christ, militating
in many respects against it; since Christ has attached to
baptism the doctrine of the Gospel, faith and repentance, as a
seal and token of the same.</p>

<p>And, as infant baptism does not accord with, but militates
against the baptism of Christ, even so does it not agree with
the circumcision of the Jews, which was not commanded to
children but to adults, namely, that on the eighth day, every
male child among them should be circumcised, on pain of being
cut off. But it is not so with the baptism of Christ,
concerning which no command is given to the parents, much less
to any one else, to baptize their children, or to have them
baptized. But baptism is an ordinance of Christ, similar in
part to the Supper, which no one is commanded to cause to be
administered to another, but which Christian ordinance each
must desire and receive by His own faith, for which reason it
does in no wise apply to new born infants.</p>

<p>And as unqualified as infants are to observe the Supper (in
which every reasonable person will agree with us), even so
unfit are they also to receive Christian baptism. And, as
infant baptism, for want of testimony from the divine
Scriptures, is demonstrated only by arguments and uncertain
conclusions, so also, by such and similar conclusions, the
Supper may be appropriated to infants, as was formerly done in
the Roman church. And as we may by no means, on such human
conclusion, admit infants to the Supper, just as little may we
on these conclusions admit them to baptism; but in all this all
of us who do not wish to be seduced and deceived must
necessarily adhere to the doctrine of Christ and His apostles.
But, as the Jews adhered unchangingly to the circumcision on
the eighth day, without following in any wise their own
opinion, even so should all Christians still much more adhere
unalterably to the doctrine of Christ, and administer baptism
only upon faith and repentance, as Christ has ordained.</p>

<p>But all Christians are commanded and in duty bound to walk
before their children with a good example, and to bring them up
in the fear of the Lord, by good teachings and instructions,
without using on them baptism, the Supper, or any other
ceremonies; since it is known that it is impossible for any one
to unite another to the Lord, without His will and
knowledge.</p>

<p>But as soon as men grow up and arrive at the years of
discretion, it is found, that through their ornate sinful
nature they live after the flesh, and thereby fall from grace,
to which they had been bought by the blood of Christ. Their
souls then need the hearing of the Word of God, whence proceed
faith and regeneration, and, as a consequence thereof,
Christian baptism; which by Christ has been appended to faith
and regeneration, and may never be separated therefrom; and
which is represented as a grave in which men are to bury their
own actual sins which they have put off, and are thus to rise
with Christ to newness of life, and walk after the Spirit.</p>

<p>And as no bath to wash off the filth of the body can be used
on an unborn child, but the child must first be born; so
Christian baptism, which is compared to the washing of new born
infants, can, according to the will of God, be given to none
but those who are regenerated by faith, dead to sin, desire the
same, rise from the death of sin, and walk in newness of life,
observing whatsoever Christ has commanded them.</p>

<p>Hence no one can be recognized as a brother or sister in the
church of Christ, with whom any Christian ordinance may be
practiced, unless they have previously, according to the Word
of God, received upon faith the. Christian baptism here spoken
of, which is the first ordinance and the reception into the
Christian communion, by which we submit and obligate ourselves
to actually observe all the commandments and ordinances of God.
And as there is but one faith and one God, so there is only one
Christian baptism, which, having been once received upon true
faith, according to the institution of Christ, may not be
repeated or renewed.</p>

<p>Of the baptism of John, and how he as a messenger and
forerunner sent before Christ, preached the baptism of
repentance, and pointed to Christ, read, "John did baptize in
the wilderness, and preach the baptism of repentance for the
remission of sins." Mark 1:4; Matt. 3:6, 11., "I indeed baptize you with water; but one mightier than I
cometh, the latchet of whose shoes I am not worthy to unloose:
he shall baptize you with the Holy Ghost and with fire." Luke
3:16; John 1:31.</p>

<p>How Christ Jesus commands His disciples to preach the
Gospel, and to baptize only hearers and</p>

</div><div id="399"> 

<p>believers of it, and not unintelligent, ignorant children,
read, "All power is given unto me in heaven and in earth. Go ye
therefore, and teach all nations, baptizing them in the name of
the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost: teaching
them to observe all things whatsoever I have commanded you: and
lo, I am with you alway, even unto the end of the world." Matt.
28:18-20., "He that believeth and is baptized shall be saved; but he
that believeth not shall be damned." Mark 14:16.</p>

<p>How the apostles, pursuant to this high injunction, preached
the Gospel, and baptized only the hearers, believers, and
self-desiring recipients, read, "When they heard this, they were
pricked in their heart, and said unto Peter and to the rest of
the apostles, Men and brethren, what shall we do? Then Peter
said unto them. Repent, and be baptized every one of you in the
name of Jesus Christ for tfie remission of sins.""Then they
that gladly received his word were baptized." Acts 2:37, 38,
41., "And the eunuch said, See, here is water; what doth hinder
me to be baptized? And Philip said, If thou believest with all
throe heart, thou mayest. And he answered and said, I believe
that Jesus Christ is the Son of God. And he commanded the
chariot to stand still: and they went down both into the water,
both Philip and the eunuch; and he baptized him." Acts
8:36-38.</p>

<p>How the apostles, according to this foundation, taught and
baptized several households, after they had heard the Word of
God, had believed, had been filled with the Holy Ghost,
ordained to the ministry of the saints, and regarded as
believers, read: Acts 10:37; 16:15, 32; I Cor. 16:15; Acts
18:8.</p>

<p>How the apostles in their epistles described Christian
baptism as a burying of sins into the death of Christ, a rising
and walking in newness of life, a putting on of Christ, a
washing of regeneration, a being baptized by one Spirit into
one body, and the answer of a good conscience toward God, read:
Rom. 6:3; Col. 2:12; Gal. 3:27; Tit. 3:5; I Cor. 12:13; I Pet.
3:21.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE XXII</h2> 

<p><i>Of the Lord's Supper or the breaking of bread,</i> we
believe and confess: As baptism is an ordinance and institution
of the Lord, by which believers are united with each other by
one Spirit in fellowship with Christ; so the Supper is a worthy
ordinance and institution of Christ, by which believers who
have been baptized according to the ordinance of Christ, are
taught and admonished, to live and walk in Christ even as they
have received Him by faith in baptism, and to be bound by
brotherly love to their neighbors, with whom they are to live
and walk in the unity of the Spirit, according to the same rule
of the divine Word; and that they are to remember hereby, with
heartfelt contemplation, the bitter suffering and death of the
Lord.</p>

<p>And in order to put men in remembrance of this, it pleased
the Lord Jesus for this purpose to use bread and wine, things
well known among men, and thereby to implant into the hearts of
believers heavenly and hidden things; thereby teaching men to
remember, that, as bread from many broken grains is made into
one bread, and the wine being pressed from many grapes and made
one beverage thereby being necessary, useful and adapted as
food and drink for the body of man; even so Christ, from ardent
love, suffered Himself to be broken on the cross, His blood to
be shed, and trod the winepress of suffering alone, to minister
by His flesh and blood, as necessary meat and drink, to the
souls of men; by which we are taught, that like as bread is of
many grains broken and prepared as bread, and wine is of many
grapes pressed and made a beverage; so also, many believers,
from various places, are by one faith become one bread or
church, and bound together in fellowship; in order that thereby
all those who worthily receive, and eat and drink with the
mouth this bread and wine, may hereby through faith in the
Spirit, receive, and become partakers of, Christ and all His
heavenly riches, and thus be strengthened in the faith, fed in
the soul, and be bound together by fervent love, with God and
their neighbors, as members of one body.</p>

<p>But believers must in no wise place any confidence in these
visible memorials, as though they in themselves were more
sacred and worthy than other like, common meat and drink, or
had power to give unto men grace and forgiveness of sins. By so
doing one should depart with the heart from his Creator, and
seek grace from the creature, where it is not to be found. But
believers must receive these signs as nothing more than bread
and wine, confide with a firm heart only in that which is
thereby taught and signified, and look upon and regard these
signs as figures, as the Holy Ghost is wont, in the Holy
Scriptures, to call the signs, that which is signified by them.
And as in this institution of the Supper by Christ the cup is
called the New Testament in His blood, which cup is really not
the New Testament itself, but is figuratively so called,
because the blood of Christ which He shed for the sin of the
world, is proclaimed and recommended to us through the New
Testament; which signifies, that as a testator by a testament
bequeaths to his heirs his property, which they are to receive
and enjoy after his death; so has Christ in His last
Supper-since He could not remain with them-bequeathed His last
will in the New Testament, together with all its heavenly
riches, to His friends and followers; in order that all those
who in this testament are specified and recorded as children of
God and heirs of Christ, shall enjoy His glorious riches;
whereupon they receive in the Supper, with the mouth, only
natural bread and wine; but through faith there is received,
according to the spirit, Christ's flesh and blood, which He
gave as an atonement for the human race, of which the natural
bread and wine,</p>

</div><div id="400"> 

<p>and the supper are figures, signs, and representations.</p>

<p>Hence, believers are to use this worthy institution of
Christ among each other, and thereby, through an ordained
blameless minister, proclaim with great reverence the bitter
suffering and death of the Lord.</p>

<p>And after God has been thanked with an humble heart, for His
boundless grace and mercy, and been called upon by fervent
prayers, the bread shall be broken by the minister, the wine
poured out, and be received by all believers baptized according
to the ordinance of Christ, and each shall, examining himself,
use, and avail himself of the same, with heartfelt
contemplation of the broken body and shed blood of the Lord
Jesus. This shall constantly be observed by believers in this
manner, when time and place permit, until the appearing of
Jesus Christ from heaven.</p>

<p>Of this institution and ordinance of Christ, read, "And as
they were eating, Jesus took bread, and blessed it, and brake
it, and gave it to the disciples, -and said, Take eat; this is
my body. And he took the cup, and gave thanks, and gave it to
them, saying, Drink ye all of it; for this is my blood of the
New Testament, which is shed for many for the remission of
sins. But I say unto you, I will not drink henceforth of this
fruit of the vine, until that day when I drink it new with you
in my Father's kingdom." Matt. 26:26-29; Mark 14:22; Luke
22:19.</p>

<p>How the apostles in accordance with this also practiced and
observed it in the same form and manner, with bread and wine,
read, "I have received of the Lord that which also I delivered
unto you, That the Lord Jesus, the same night in which he was
betrayed, took bread: and when he had given thanks, he brake
it, and said, Take, eat; this is my body, which is broken for
you: this do in remembrance of me. After the same manner also
he took the cup, when he had supped, saying, This cup is the
new testament in my blood: this do ye, as oft as ye drink it,
in remembrance of me. For as often as ye eat this bread, and
drink this cup, ye do shew the Lord's death till he come.
Wherefore whosoevO shall eat this bread, and drink this cup of
the Lord, unworthily, shall be guilty of the body and blood of
the Lord. But let a man examine himself, and so let him eat of
that bread, and drink of that cup. For he that eateth and
drinketh unworthily, eateth and drinketh damnation to himself,
not discerning the Lord's body." I Cor. 11:23-29; Acts 2:42;
20:7, 11.</p>

<p>How the bread and wine in the Supper are not the real body
and blood of Christ, but signs of His communion with the
believer, read, "The cup of blessing which we bless, is it not
the communion of the blood of Christ? The bread which we
break', is it not the communion of the body of Christ? For we
being many are one bread, and one body': for' we are all
partakers of that one bread. Behold Israel after the flesh: are
not they which eat of the sacrifices partakers of the altar?" I
Cor. 10:16-18.</p>

<p>Mark, the Israelites did not eat the altar, but only the
sacrifice, and thereby were partakers of the altar. Thus also,
Christians do not eat and drink with the mouth the real body
and blood of Christ, but only bread and wine, as figures; but
according to the soul, they, by faith, receive Christ Jesus,
with all His benefits, and are thus partakers of the true altar
Christ Jesus.</p>

<p>Read in regard to this, "I am the bread of life: he that
cometh to me shall never hunger, and he that believeth on me
shall never thirst. It is the Spirit that quickeneth; the flesh
profiteth nothing: the words that I speak unto you, they are
spirit, and they are life." John 6:35, 63.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE XXIII</h2> 

<p><i>Of the feet washing of believers</i> we confess: After
our Leader Christ Jesus had celebrated the Supper with His
apostles, He, before His suffering, used another ordinance with
them, and commanded that they should observe it with each
other. He rose from supper, girded Himself with a linen towel,
poured water into a basin, washed the disciples' feet, and
wiped them with the towel; saying to them, "Ye call me Master
and Lord: and ye say well; for so I am. If I then, your Lord
and Master, have washed your feet; ye also ought to wash one
another's feet. For I have given you an example, that ye should
do as I have done to you." And He also added, "If ye know these
things, happy axe ye if ye do them, "</p>

<p>And we find that the apostles observed this ordinance of
Christ in this manner, and that they counted it, in the
ministry of the saints, among the good works, and required it
of believers. Hence, the believers, as successors and followers
of Christ and His apostles, ought also, when time and place
permit, practice and observe this ordinance of Christ. When
their fellow believers, out of love, visit them, they shall
with heartfelt humility, receive them with the kiss of love and
peace into their houses, and as a ministration to their
neighbors, according to the humiliation of Christ, wash their
feet; sincerely considering how the most worshipful Son of God
humbled Himself, not only washing the feet of His apostles, but
much more, washing and purifying with His precious death and
blood, all our souls and consciences from the stain of eternal
condemnation. On this the pious ought herein to meditate with
an humble heart.</p>

<p>How Christ practiced this ordinance with His apostles, and
commanded it to be observed, read, John 13:4-17.</p>

<p>And also, how the apostles required it of believers as one
of the good works read, "Let not a widow be taken into the
number under three-score years old, having been the wife of one
man, well reported of for good works; if she have brought up
children, if she have lodged strangers, if she have washed the
saints' feet," etc. I Tim. 5:9, 10.</p>

</div><div id="401"> 

<p>How the pious fathers practiced this ordinance with the
guests whom they received, read: Genesis 18:4; 19:2. And also:
Luke 7:38; John 11:2; Acts 16:33.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE XXIV</h2> 

<p><i>Of good works.</i> Of good works we believe and confess:
That for every true Christian it is not enough, in every
respect according to the Scriptures, to confess the faith
aright with the mouth, and to regard Christ Jesus as our only
Head, Redeemer, and Saviour, but that above this we must
necessarily manifest from our faith, as a fruit of gratitude,
virtuous works. Thus also, it is not enough, that we put off
all the accursed works of the flesh, and seek to bury them by
baptism into the death of Christ; but we must also rise from
this death of sin, and live and walk after the Spirit in a new
life adorned with good works; and thus we are not only to put
off the old man with his evil deeds, but it is also our duty to
put on the new man with his good deeds, in righteousness and
true holiness, and to let our light so shine before men, that
they may see our good works, and glorify our Father in heaven;
in order that thus all believers, as a tree by its good fruits,
may be known and distinguished by their good works from all
unfruitful and unbelieving men.</p>

<p>These good works must not be performed through an outward
appearance of holiness to please mortal men; nor must we follow
herein the hypocrites and self-righteous Pharisees, and others,
whose works mainly consist in [things of] their own choice, and
self-invented commandments, which, according to the Scriptures,
is only a vain and unavailing worship; but we must work out
from our faith such divine virtues as are taught, and required
of us in the-holy Scriptures, and in which we have the example
of Christ and His apostles, whose footsteps we are so highly
commanded to follow; and all this we must do from the heart, to
the honor of Him who created us; thus learning from Christ to
be meek and lowly in heart, and thereby to put off all pride,
which latter is the beginning of all destruction, and proceeds
from man's sinful heart, and manifests itself outwardly in the
adorning of and display in dress [in the style of], living, and
in words and works; and on the contrary, to adorn ourselves
inwardly with an humbled spirit, which does not think much of
itself, but in lowliness esteems his neighbor better than
himself; and outwardly in our conversation after our lowly Head
and Example, Christ Jesus.</p>

<p>Thus we must also put off avarice, which is called the root
of all evil, whence, proceed many sinful desires and
unrighteous works, and, on the other hand, put on the love and
mercy of our heavenly Father, and manifest it towards our
neighbors and all men by works of mercy; seeing the practice of
love and mercy is the chief sacrifice with which we can please
our Creator in this present time. Likewise we must put off all
unclean lusts and desires, fornication, and all uncleanness,
each preserving, on the contrary, his body chaste, holy, and
pure, and abstaining also from all drunkenness, revelings, and
banquetings; in excessive eating and drinking, and on the
contrary, live soberly, temperately, righteously, and godly in
this world, with humble fasting and constant praying to God
Almighty, and not to make provision for the flesh, to fulfill
the lusts thereof.</p>

<p>We also must not walk in the way of sinners, nor hold
fellowship with light-minded persons, where foolish talking and
lies are bandied about; but we must associate with the pious,
whose conversation treats of godliness, and who speak with
tongues truly circumcised; and gladly attend the assembly of
the believers, where we hear the praise of the Lord proclaimed;
and furthermore, observe according to all our ability the
commandments and ordinances of the Lord, and thus by patient
continuance in well doing seek for eternal life, remembering
that Almighty God has promised eternal life to that faith which
in this manner works by love; just as He has pronounced the
sentence of eternal death upon unbelief with its evil works;
and that all boasted faith without good works (as the body
without the spirit), in itself is dead. But all the pious who
thus evince divine virtue from their faith, and seek to excel
in good works, must not suppose that they are able to merit
salvation by their good works, or that God does owe them</p>

<p>anything for them; but all true Christians are to consider
themselves unprofitable servants, who of themselves can do
nothing good; but that Almighty God, by His grace works in them
both to will and to do that which is good, and that they are
encompassed with a body of sin, which lusts against the Spirit,
against which they have a continual warfare until the last
enemy, which is death, shall be vanquished. For this reason all
the pious fall far too short in good works, are very imperfect
and frail, and hence, are in duty bound to pray daily, with an
humble heart, to Almighty God, for forgiveness and remission of
sins, and to give heartfelt praise, honor and thanks to Him for
His saving grace which He has manifested towards us. And thus
we hope to be saved only through the unmerited grace and mercy
of our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ, and not through our good
works. Tit. 3:8; Luke 18:10.</p>

<p>Of the deadly works of darkness, which separate men from
God, and which we must put off and lay aside by faith,
read, "Seeing that ye have put off the old man with his deeds;
and have put on the new man," etc. Col. 3:9, 10.</p>

<p>Read further concerning the twenty-three sins which are
worthy of eternal death. Rom. 1:29-31.</p>

<p>Of the ten works of unrighteousness which shall not inherit
the kingdom of God, read: I Cor. 6:9, 10.</p>

<p>Of the seventeen works of the flesh to which the</p>

</div><div id="402"> 

<p>kingdom of God is denied, read: Gal. 5:19-21; Matt.
7:23.</p>

<p>Of the good and virtuous works which the believers are to
manifest from their faith as fruits of gratitude, read, "Let
your light so shine before men, that they may see your good
works," etc. Matt. 5:16; I Pet. 2:12; Phil. 2:15., "To them who by patient continuance in well doing seek for
glory and honor and immortality, eternal life." Rom. 2:7; John
8:39; James 2:22; Gal. 5:6., "But (which becometh women professing godliness) with good
works." I Tim. 2:10., "That they do good, that they be rich in good works," etc. I
Tim. 6:18.</p>

<p>Of the nine beatitudes, read: Matt. 5:1-11.</p>

<p>Of the seven works of mercy, read: Matthew 25:35, 36.</p>

<p>Of the nine fruits of the Spirit. Gal. 5:22, 23.</p>

<p>Of the seven cardinal virtues which we are to evince from
our faith, and that where this does not follow, we are blind,
read: II Pet. 1:5-7."For as the body without the spirit is
dead, so faith without works is dead also." James 2:26."And the
sea gave up the dead which were in it; and death and hell
delivered up the dead which were in them: and they were judged
every man according to their works." Rev. 20:13; II Cor.
5:10.</p>

<p>How we are saved not through any works which we have done,
but only through the grace of God, read, "But we believe that
through the grace of the Lord Jesus Christ we shall be saved."
Acts 15:11., "Not by works of righteousness which we have done, but
according to his mercy he saved us." Tit. 3:5; Eph. 2:5; II
Tim. 1:9; Luke 17:10; Acts 4:12; 15:11.</p>

 
 <h1>ARTICLE XXV</h1>

<p><i>Of marriage</i>. Of marriage we confess: That the same is
honorable and an ordinance of God, who in the beginning
instituted this state with the two human beings first created
in the image of God, blessed it, and joined them together. And
since this divine ordinance, through the hardness of the heart
and the evil wantonness of man had fallen into great disorder,
so that men, through the lusts of the flesh, married whomsoever
they would, and took unto them many wives, and then, for divers
reasons, dismissed them by a bill of divorcement and married
others; therefore Christ as a perfect Lawgiver, rejected and
abolished the writing of divorcement and permission of Moses,
together with all abuses thereof, referring all that heard and
believed him to the original ordinance of his heavenly Father,
instituted with Adam and Eve in Paradise; and thus
re-establishing marriage between one man and one woman, and so
inseparably and firmly binding the bond of matrimony, that they
might not, on any account, separate and marry another, except
in case of adultery or death. Hence, every believer who desires
to enter into matrimony, must follow this doctrine of Christ
and the above example, and unite himself in marriage only with
one person, who has been, by a like faith with him, born from
above, of God, and renewed, and created after the image of God.
And such persons, after their parents and the church have given
their consent, shall, in the presence of the church, with
fervent prayer to God, be joined together by a minister. This
we believe to be marrying in the Lord, of which God is Himself
the Author and Joiner. II Pet. 1:1; Jno. 3:3; I Jno. 5:4.</p>

<p>But all unregenerated persons, who are not yet sanctified by
faith in Christ, and do thus marry, we also regard as being in
honorable matrimony, but not in the Lord. Heb. 13:4; I Cor.
7:12.</p>

<p>And, as Christ accepts none as His bride and a member of His
body, but those alone who are united with Him by faith; so
also, believers cannot sever their bodies which are sanctified
and surrendered to God, as members of Christ and temples of the
Holy Ghost from Christ, and unite them in marriage with the
unregenerate, and thus be unequally yoked together with
unbelievers, who are not known to the church, by faith and
Christian baptism, as brethren or sisters in fellowship, seeing
that baptism is the first Christian ordinance in the church,
after which all other ordinances of God follow. Eph. 5:30; Gal.
3:26.</p>

<p>Thus marriage is advised by the holy Ghost, to avoid
fornication and all uncleanness; but if any one does not need
this, and can without it, keep himself pure and undefiled, in a
virginal state, in order to serve the Lord the better and
without hindrance, it is commended still more highly. Hence,
marriage is free for all, but no commandment:</p>

<p>How God the Lord in the beginning instituted marriage,
read, "And the Lord God said, It is not good that the man should
be alone; I will make him a helpmeet for him.""And the rib,
which the Lord God had taken from man, made he a woman, and
brought her unto the man.""Therefore shall a man leave his
father and his mother, and shall cleave unto his wife: and they
shall be one flesh." Gen. 2:18, 22, 24.</p>

<p>How Christ rejected all abuses of marriage, and renewed the
ordinance of His Father, read, "Have ye not read, that he which
made them at the beginning made them male and female, and said,
For this cause shall a man leave father and mother, and shall
cleave to his wife: and the twain shall be one flesh? Wherefore
they are no more twain, but one flesh. What therefore God hath
joined together, let not man put asunder." Matt. 19:4-6, 8; I
Cor. 7:10., "Marriage is honorable in all, and the bed undefiled: but
whoremongers and adulterers God will judge." Heb. 13:4; I Cor.
7:2., "The wife is bound by the law as long as her husband liveth;
but if her husband be dead, she is at liberty to be married to
whom she will; only in</p>

</div><div id="403"> 

<p>the Lord." I Cor. 7:39; Gen. 1:27; 24:4; Exodus 34:16; Num.
36:6; Deut. 7:3; Tob. 7:13.</p>

<p>Concerning the transgressors of this, and their punishment,
read: Gen. 6:3; Num. 25:1; Nehemiah 13:26, 27; I Kings
11:1.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE XXVI</h2> 

<p><i>Of the swearing of oaths,</i> we confess: That the people
of the Old Testament were permitted to swear in various ways by
the name of the Lord; either by lifting up their hand toward
heaven, or by putting it on the thigh of some one, which was
done in various ways, and into which practice, through the
artifice of man, many abuses were introduced, so that they
would swear by heaven and earth, by Jerusalem, by their head,
the temple, the gold of the temple, the altar, and the
sacrifice; on account of which the Lord Christ, who had come
from God, and been sent, to execute judgment and righteousness,
being the only lawgiver, utterly abolished and prohibited all
the aforesaid swearing, whether permitted or feigned and, in
place thereof, referred all His hearers and followers, only to
yea and nay, which is so in truth.</p>

<p>And we also find that the high apostles of Christ, as
obedient sheep of their only Shepherd, followed the doctrine of
Christ in this respect. Hence all believers are in duty bound
obediently to follow this doctrine of Christ and the course of
His apostles, putting away all lying, and dealing only in
truth, and thus testifying in all true matters, whether before
authority, or however the case may be, only with yea that which
is yea, and with nay that which is nay, without adding anything
more; and to keep these few words, little in sound, but great
and strong in signification, as inviolable as an oath, thus
showing themselves to be obedient followers of Christ and His
apostles.</p>

<p>Of the rejection and abolishment of the ancient custom of
swearing, and how Christ commanded yea and nay in place of it,
read, "Again, ye have heard that it hath been said by them of
old time, Thou shalt not forswear thyself, but shalt perform
unto the Lord thine oaths: but I say unto you, Swear not at
all; neither by heaven; for it is God's throne: nor by the
earth; for it is his footstool</p>

<p>neither by Jerusalem; for it is the city of the great King.
Neither shalt thou swear by thy head, because thou canst not
make one hair white or black. But let your communication be,
Yea, yea; Nay, nay; for whatsoever is more than these cometh of
evil." Matt. 5:33-37; 23:21., "But above all things, my brethren, swear not, neither by
heaven, neither by the earth, neither by any other oath; but
let your yea be yea; and your nay, nay; lest ye fall into
condemnation." James 5:12., "When I therefore was thus minded, did I use lightness? or
the things that I purpose, do I purpose according to the flesh,
that with me there should be yea, yea, and nay, nay? For all
the promises of God in him are yea, and in him Amen." II Cor.
1:17, 20.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE XXVII</h2> 

<p><i>Of the ofice of magistracy, and secular power,</i> we
confess: That the office of magistracy is an ordinance and
institution of God who Himself willed and ordained that such a
power should be over every country in order that thereby
countries and cities might, through good policy and laws, for
the punishment of the evil and the protection of the pious, be
governed and maintained in quiet and peace, in a good civil
life; without which power of authority the world, lying as it
is in wickedness, could not subsist. Hence, all believers are
in duty bound, not only for wrath, but also for conscience
sake, to submit themselves to this power, and as good subjects,
to obey it with fear and reverence; willingly and without
murmuring to render unto their human ordinances and laws
everything that is due to them, whether it be tribute, custom
or excise; and to pray with an humble heart for their life and
welfare, and thus to seek with faithful heart the prosperity of
the country and city in which they reside; and though they, for
the Word of God, may have to suffer persecution, the spoiling
of their property, and death, from the authorities, they may
not speak evil of them, nor resist them in any wise with
weapons and defense, but commit vengeance to God alone, and
expect consolation with God after this life. Rom. 12:2; Wisd.
6:4; Ecclus. 17:14.</p>

<p>But if the authorities, through Christian equity, grant
liberty to practice the faith in every respect, we are under so
much the greater obligation of submissive obedience to them;
but so far as the authorities abuse the office imposed on them,
which extends only to the temporal, bodily government of men in
temporal things, and encroach on the office of Christ, who
alone has power over the spirits and souls of men, seeking,
through their human laws, to press and compel men to act
contrary to the Word of God, we may not follow them, but must
obey God rather than men, seeing Christ has been set by God His
Father above all authority and power,- the head in His church;
and to this Father of Spirits we are directed, that in all
things pertaining to the faith we should obey Him.</p>

<p>And as the kingdom of Christ is not of this world, but
spiritual, He has dissuaded and prohibited all His servants and
followers from all secular government and highness, and has
instituted in His church various ordinances, as pastors,
teachers, helps and governments, by which the saints may be
joined together, to edify the body of Christ; but the secular
office* He left to the secular government, under which the
followers of Christ as strangers and pilgrims, who have here no
kingdom, power or continuing city, must sojourn, and fight only
with spiritual weapons, which is the Word of God; seeing
neither Christ nor His apostles pre-</p>

<cite> "But not the office of authority," then says the
writer.</cite>

</div><div id="404"> 

<p>scribed to believers any laws or rules according to which
they should govern the world; neither did they refer them to
the laws of the Jews, much less to those of the Roman emperors,
or heathen laws, according to which they might regulate
themselves herein; but they prescribed to believers only good
doctrines, how they should conduct themselves in all Christian
propriety as obedient subjects, under the government of the
authorities; referring them to His own example, who shunned all
the greatness of this world, and showed Himself only as a poor
servant. Thus must also all His followers avoid the office of
magistracy in all its departments, and not administer it,
following also in this the example of Christ and His apostles,
in whose church said offices were not administered, as is well
known to every intelligent person.</p>

<p>But as all Christians are not permitted, but very strictly
prohibited by God, to speak evil of, judge or condemn any one
that is without their communion, we would with this still much
less speak evil or injuriously of the magistracy, but trust in
the only good God, who keeps all the alms of man as a signet,
and his good deeds as the apple of the eye, and has promised a
true reward to him who will give only a cup of cold water in
the name of a disciple; that he, the Blessed, will also be
gracious to, and not leave unrewarded the good deeds of all
authorities, particularly those who administer their office
aright according to the.ordinances of God, which consists
chiefly in protecting good, innocent, defenseless people, and
in punishing the evil. Hence, all Christians are in duty bound
to regard the authorities as God's ministers, and to pray for
them, with a fervent heart, that it may please God to be
gracious to them and give them eternal salvation.</p>

<p>How government is of God, and for what purpose it is
instituted, read, "For there is no power but of God: the powers
that be are ordained of God. Whosoever therefore resisteth the
power, resisteth the ordinance of God: and they that resist
shall receive to themselves damnation. For rulers are not a
terror to good works, but to the evil. Wilt thou then not be
afraid of the power? do that which is good, and thou shalt have
praise of the same: for he is the minister of God to thee for
good. But if thou do that which is evil, be afraid; for he
beareth not the sword in vain: for he is the minister of God, a
revenger to execute wrath upon him that doeth evil." Rom.
13:1-4; Sir. 17:17., "Jesus answered Pilate: Thou couldest have no power at all
against me, except it were given thee from above." John 19:11;
Wisd. 6:3; Dan. 2:21; 4:25; 5:21; Jer. 27:5.</p>

<p>How Christ taught His followers not to accept magisterial
office, read, "But Jesus called them to him, and saith unto
them, Ye know that they which are accounted to rule over the
Gentiles exercise lordship over them; and their great ones
exercise authority upon them. But so shall it not be among you:
but whosoever will be great among you, shall be your minister:
and whosoever of you will be the chiefest, shall be servant of
all. For even the Son of man came not to be ministered unto,
but to minister, and to give his life a ransom for many." Mark
10:42-45; Matt. 20:25; Luke 22:5.</p>

<p>Mark- the words: But so <i>shall</i> it <i>not be among</i>
you. This can not be applied to the apostles only, who were
equal servants, the one being no greater than the other, and
they soon separating f rom each other to preach the Gospel to
all nations, could not, on this account, show to each other
alone the duty of servants here required; hence the words,
<i>among</i> you, must necessarily be understood of the whole
church, seeing Christ spoke to His twelve apostles many others
of His principal doctrines and commandments, which relate to
all believers, as His blessed lips say in the Gospel, "And what
I say unto you I say unto all." Mark 13:37., "Jesus answered, My kingdom is not of this world: if my
kingdom were of this world, then would my servants fight, that
I should not be delivered to the Jews: but now is my kingdom
not from hence." John 1$:36; 6:15; Matt. 5:39; II Cor. 10:4;
Eph. 6:13; Isa. 2:4; Micah 4:3; Zech. 9:10; Ps. 76:3.</p>

<p>Read further, not according to what law the believers are to
govern the unbelievers, but only how the church of Christ shall
be obedient to government."Let every soul be subject unto the
higher powers.""Wherefore ye must needs be subject, not only
for wrath, but also'for conscience' sake.""Render therefore to
all their dues; tribute to whom tribute is due; custom to whom
custom; fear to whom fear." Rom. 13:1, 5, 7., "Render therefore unto Caesar the things which are Caesar's,
and unto God the things that are God's." Matt. 22:21; Mark
12:17., "Submit yourselves to every ordinance of man for the Lord's
sake: whether it be to the king, as supreme; or unto governors,
as unto them that are sent by him for the punishment of evil
doers, and for the praise of them that do well." I Pet. 2:13,
14., "Put them in mind to be subject to principalities and
powers, to obey magistrates, to be ready to every good work, to
speak evil of no man, to be no brawlers, but gentle, showing
all meekness unto all men." Tit. 3:1, 2; I Tim. 2:2; Jer. 29:7;
Bar. 1:11.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE XXVIII</h2> 

<p><i>Of the discipline of the Christian Church and separation
of ofending members.</i> Of this we confess: That, as a house
or city cannot be maintained without doors, gates and walls by
which evil men may be expelled, excluded and debarred, and the
good and pious be taken in and protected; so Christ, for the
preservation of His church, gave her the key of heaven, which
is His Word, that by and according to the same she should judge
and reprove according to truth, for their reformation, all
those</p>

</div><div id="405"> 

<p>in her communion that are found to offend in doctrine
and-conversation, that is, to act contrary to any commandment
or ordinance which God has given to His church; and thus to
separate the disobedient from her communion, that the church
may not be leavened and stained by their false doctrine and
impure walk, and become a partaker of other men's sins; and
that the pious thereby may be brought to fear, and restrain
themselves from the commission of similar offenses.</p>

<p>And, as God through Moses commanded this punishment of
transgressors to be inflicted according to the magnitude of the
offense, so that those who through ignorance, weakness, and
otherwise, offended by minor sins against any of the
commandments of the Lord, were reconciled to God by various
offerings and the intercessions of the priests, but the open,
great transgressors of the law could not be reconciled by such
offerings, but had to die without mercy under two or three
witnesses; so Christ in the New Testament also taught to
inflict Christian punishment according to the magnitude of the
offense; not to man's destruction, as in the punishment of
Israel, which was death, by which the transgressor was cut off
from repentance and reformation; but Christ having come to save
men's souls, instituted this punishment for the reformation of
sinners and ordained that if any one see his brother commit a
transgression which is obviously a sin, but not so great as to
have brought forth death in him, he shall out of Christian love
for his soul, speak to him privately, with the Word of God, and
reprove him of his sin and admonish him. If he receive this
Christian admonition, he has gained his brother, and shall, out
of fervent charity, conceal and cover his sin. I Pet. 4:8. But
if he heareth him not, he shall take one or two more with him,
so that in the mouth of these witnesses every word may be
established. But if he shall neglect to hear them, then the
matter must be brought before the church; and if he neglect to
hear the church, all the members of which, are judges, he shall
be excluded from the brotherhood.</p>

<p>But if any one fall into open works of the flesh, from which
the church perceives that, through these sins he has separated
himself from his God, and incurred the divine wrath, such an
one the church shall, without any of the aforesaid admonitions
and words as in the case of the offending sinner, on account
of"tis sins, exclude from the brotherhood, and point him to
repentance and reformation, by which he may again find grace
with God, even as he has become separated from God through the
evil works of the flesh. Thus the church shall knowingly keep
none in her communion who are separated from God through their
sins; nor separate any from her communion save those who have
previously through their sins become separated from God; nor
again receive any, and promise life and peace to them, except
those who hrough faith and true repentance have first been
received into grace with God.</p>

<p>This true repentance possesses the following properties: 1.
That we have a sincere sorrow before Almighty God for all the
sins we have committed; 2. that we confess our sins from the
heart, before God and men; 3. that we desist from and do not
continue any longer in sin, and, according to our ability, seek
to make amends for the evil we have done, by doing good. This
repentance and reformation again opens the entrance to the
kingdom of God, which before was closed to us on account of our
sins. So that the church of God, by this her separation and
reception, may according to His Word, follow the previous
separation and reception by God in heaven, of which the action
of the church is only a proof and proclamation.</p>

<p>And since with God there is no respect of persons, therefore
the church of God shall use this key of the Word of God aright,
and, in punishing, spare no one, whether he be minister or
brother, man or woman, but shall judge the small as well as the
great after one rule and measure of the divine word, according
to the truth. And, as all disobedient sinners by consent of the
church, with sorrow and sadness of heart, are excluded from the
brotherhood, and referred to repentance and reformation; so
also shall -all obedient, penitent sinners with the consent and
concurrence of the church, be received, by the bishop of the
church. And, as men are wont to rejoice over the finding of a
lost sheep, piece of silver, or son, so shall believers rejoice
with all the angels of God over the repentance and return of
their erring brother or sister.</p>

<p>How the minor sins, whether caused through weakness or
ignorance, were reconciled by the priest with various
offerings, read: Lev. 4:27; 5; Numbers 5:6; 15:22.</p>

<p>But the open transgressors of the law were put to death
without mercy under two or three witnesses. Of this. read: Num.
15:30; Lev. 24:14; Deut. 17:12; 19:15; Heb. 10:28.</p>

<p>In connection with this read also the words of the high
priest Eli, "If one man sin against another, the judge shall
judge him; but if a man sin against the Lord, who shall entreat
for him?" I Sam. 2:25.</p>

<p>How Christ commanded that small offenses between brother and
brother should be punished, read, "If thy brother shall
trespass against thee, go and tell him his fault between thee
and him alone: if he shall hear thee, thou hast gained thy
brother. But if he will not hear thee, then take with thee one
or two more, that in the mouth of two or three witnesses every
word may be established. And if he shall neglect to hear them,
tell it unto the church: but i f he neglect to hear the church,
let him be unto thee as a heathen man and a publican. Verily I
say unto you, whatsoever ye shall bind on earth shall be bound
in heaven; and whatsoever ye shall loose on earth shall be
loosed</p>

</div><div id="406"> 

<p>in heaven." Matt. 18:15-18; Luke 17:3; Gal. 6:1; Jas.
5:19., "If any man see his brother sin a sin which is not unto
death, he shall ask, and he shall give him life for them that
sin not unto death." I John 5:16.</p>

<p>But open offending members Christ commanded to sever and
cast away without exercising admonition, intercession, or
forgiveness in regard to them, before the separation. Read:
Matt. 18:8; Mark 9:42.</p>

<p>Thus did also the apostles, according to the doctrine of
Christ, deny eternal life to all the known works of the flesh,
condemning them to death, and in their assembly; delivered the
Corinthian fornicator unto Satan, with the word and power of
our Lord Jesus Christ, without using the aforesaid admonition
with regard to him. I Cor. 5:3. Read also: I Tim. 1:20; 5:20;
II Cor. 13:2., "There is a sin unto death: I do not say that he shall pray
for it." I John 5:16; Numbers 15:30; Heb. 10:28; I Cor. 5:13;
II Cor. 13:2; Ps. 1:5; II Tim. 2:20; I Cor. 6:9; Gal. 5:21;
Eph. 5:5.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE XXIX</h2> 

<p><i>Of the withdrawing from and avoiding of apostate and
separated members,</i> is confessed: As separation is commanded
by God for the reformation of sinners, and the maintenance of
the purity of the church; so God has also commanded and willed,
that in order to shame him to reformation, the separated
individual shall be shunned and avoided. This withdrawing
proceeds from the separation, and is a fruit and proof of the
same, and without it separation is vain and unavailing. Hence,
this ordinance of God shall be practiced and maintained, by all
believers, with the separated persons. This withdrawing extends
to all spiritual communion, as the supper, evangelical
salutation, the kiss of peace, and all that pertains to it.
This withdrawing extends likewise to all temporal and bodily
things, as eating, drinking, buying and selling, daily
intercourse and conversation, with all that pertains to it.</p>

<p>Thus, believers shall, according to the Word of God,
withdraw themselves, from the separated in all spiritual,
evangelical matters, as well as in all bodily and temporal
things. And as in separation no persons may be regarded or
spared, but must, by consent, be separated from the true
members of the body; so also in withdrawing, extending to all
spiritual and temporal matters, none may be spared or excepted,
whether man or woman, parent or child, or whatever relation it
may be; seeing we nowhere read, where God gave His church a
general commandment or ordinance, that any member of said
church was entirely exempted and excluded from such
commandment; but on the contrary, it appears in many places,
that the whole number, without exception, had to regulate
themselves according to one rule set before them by God; hence
this ordinance of God must be practiced and maintained by all
the members of the body of Christ, without respect of persons,
in the fear of God, to shame sinners to reformation, until the
person punished is again received into the church.</p>

<p>But as all divine ordinances must be tempered with Christian
kindliness and discretion, these also must have their place in
this matter of shunning. Hence, the believers must conduct
themselves with more discernment and equity with regards to
separated persons, than did the scribes and Pharisees with
regard to the Sabbath; who, as it appears would rather let men
perish, than that they should receive help on the Sabbath,
thinking that the Sabbath should be broken thereby, though they
themselves, in such a case, broke the Sabbath for various minor
matters. But even as the pious followers of the law did not
sin, nor break the Sabbath, when they, on this day, performed
not their own, but only the works which God had commanded them,
so the believers neither sin nor act contrary to the
commandment of shunning, when they perform not their own works,
but only the works which God has commanded them concerning
separated persons; as, in case of necessity, to minister to
their bodies with food and other needful things, and to their
souls with the Word of God, as well as to assist them by virtue
of the commandment of God, in case of danger from water, fire
and the like; these all believers are in duty bound to do; and
they must thus, with great carefulness, seek that which is
lost, and lead that which has erred, back to the right way,
reprove and instruct them with the word of God, where such
Christian admonition may take place, according to the example
of Christ; but in all human works believers must with all
diligence withdraw themselves from the separated persons, until
they have reformed and been united again with the church.</p>

<p>In order rightly to understand this matter, it must be
considered that the people of Israel at the time of Christ were
under the power and dominion of the Romans, and could not
punish transgressors according to the law of Moses, hence they
separated from their communion and avoided those who departed
from the law of the fathers, and went over to the Gentiles,
Samaritans, or open sinners. Concerning this read: They
regarded them as unclean, abhorred them, compared them to
heathens and enemies, avoided all dealings and intercourse with
them, and hindered them in their business. III Macc. 2:34. Read
also: John 18:31; 4:9; Acts 10:28; 11; Gal. 2:12.</p>

<p>This custom Christ also observed, and commanded that the
disobedient in the church should be so regarded, saying, "If he
neglect to hear the church, let him be unto thee as a heathen
man and a publican." Matt. 18:17.</p>

<p>This the apostles also practiced in like manner, according
to the doctrine of Christ. Read, "I wrote unto you in an epistle
not to company with fornicators: yet not altogether with the
fornicators of this wo.7ld, or with the covetous, or
extortioners, or with idolaters; for then must ye needs go
out</p>

</div><div id="407"> 

<p>of the world. But now I have written unto you not to keep
company, if any man that is called a brother be a fornicator,
or covetous, or an idolater, or a railer, or a drunkard, or an
extortioner; with such a one no not to eat." I Cor. 5:9-11.</p>

<p>Here the holy apostle forbids us to company and eat with
apostate brethren or sisters, which he did not mean or command
with reference to the unrighteous of this world, but permitted
it with them; else we would needs have to go out of the world,
seeing the whole world lies in wickedness; hence it must
necessarily be understood with reference to daily intercourse
and eating, buying and selling, and the like."A man that is an
heretick, after the first and second admonition, reject."
Titus. 3:10; II Tim. 4:15; II John 10., "And if any man obey not our word by this epistle, note that
man, and have no company with him, that he may be ashamed." II
Thess. 3:14.</p>

<p>How this withdrawing is to be observed by all believers,
with regard to all apostates, walking disorderly, without
respect of person, read, "Now, we command you, brethren, in the
name of our Lord Jesus Christ, that ye withdraw yourself from
every brother that walketh disorderly, and not after the
tradition which he received of us." II Thess. 3:6.</p>

<p>Understand this withdrawing according to scriptures. Gal.
2:12; III Macc. 2:34, and the like, according to the spirit of
the Gospel of Christ.</p>

<p>How believers must seek the lost, and not count the
separated as enemies, but admonish them, as brethren. Read: II
Thess. 3:15; Jas. 5:19; Luke 19:10; 15, the whole chapter.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE XXX</h2> 

<p><i>Of the last day and the second coning of Christ from
heaven,</i> we confess: That the great God of heaven, who in
the beginning created heaven and earth with all visible things
out of nothing, also appointed a day and time, which cannot be
known by the angels of God in heaven; much less by mortal men,
but which shall unexpectedly overtake men, as the snare of the
bird, and a thief in the night; at which time the Almighty God
will destroy this whole visible, earthly, realm, and burn it
with everlasting fire, except those of the human race who shall
have done the will of God; these shall abide forever.</p>

<p>In the last great day of the Lord the Son of God, Christ
Jesus, who in the presence of the apostles ascended from the
earth in a cloud, shall come again from heaven, in the clouds
of the sky, but not in the humiliated form of a servant, as in
His first coming into the world at Bethlehem. For at this His
second coming He shall reveal Himself in the clouds as a King
of mighty kings, and Lord of lords, with the power and glory of
His Almighty Father, and all the angels of God with Him, and
shall thus, with the trump of God, and the voice of the
archangel, peal forth an unutterable sound and shout; so that
heaven and earth, all the mountains and islands, shall be
moved; the sun and moon shall lose their brightness, the stars
shall fall from heaven, and all kindreds of the earth shall
weep and wail over themselves, for fear and expectation of the
things which are to come; and all shall see the Son of man
coming, with power and great glory.</p>

<p>Of this last day of the Lord, read, "And as he sat upon the
Mount of Olives, the disciples came unto him privately, saying
Tell us, when shall these things be? And what shall be the sign
of thy coming, and of the end of the world?" Matt. 24:3., "The day of the Lord will come as a thief in the night; in
the which the heavens shall pass away with a great noise, and
the elements shall melt with fervent heat, the earth also and
the works that are therein shall be burned up." II Peter 3:16;
Sir. 16:18; Mal. 4:1., "For yourselves know perfectly that the day of the Lord so
cometh as a thief in the night. For when they shall say, Peace
and safety, then sudden destruction cometh upon them, as
travail upon a woman with child." I Thess. 5:2, 3., "Heaven and earth shall pass away, but my words shall not
pass away. But of that day and hour knoweth no man, no, not the
angels of heaven, but my Father only." Matt. 24:35, 36; Mark
13:31; Ps. 102:27; Isa. 51:6.</p>

<p>Of Christ's coming from heaven, read, "Ye men of Galilee, why
stand ye gazing up into heaven? this same Jesus, which is taken
up from you into heaven, shall so come in like manner as ye
have seen him go into heaven." Acts 1:11., "For the Lord himself shall descend from heaven with a
shout, with the voice of the archangel, and with the trump of
God." I Thess. 4:16., "Behold, he cometh with clouds; and every eye shall see him,
and they also which pierced him</p>

<p>and all kindreds of the earth shall wail because of him."
Rev. 1:7; Matt. 24:30; Luke 21:27. Read also: I Thess. 1:10; II
Thess. 1:7; Dan. 7:13; Jude 14.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE XXXI</h2> 

<p><i>Of the Death of the body and the Resurrection of the
dead,</i> we confess: That, in the beginning, man was created
immortal, but that through the envy of the devil and the sin of
our first parents, death came into the world. And, as through
the sin of Adam all men became sinful in him, so also through
him, all men became subject to bodily death; so that in
consequence thereof it is appointed unto men once to die, but
after this the judgment; seeing this sinful, corruptible flesh
and blood cannot inherit the eternal, incorruptible kingdom,
but must be renewed and glorified through death and the
resurrection, by the power of God.</p>

<p>And, even as, when a man falls into a deep sleep, his heart,
soul or spirit does not entirely sleep, as the body; so also
the spirit or soul of man does not die or fall asleep with the
body, but is and remains</p>

</div><div id="408"> 

<p>an immortal spirit. Hence temporal death, in the Scriptures,
is called a sleep, and the resurrection of the dead an
awakening from this sleep of death.</p>

<p>And as a sleeping man cannot receive and enjoy any good
gifts, either according to the soul or the body, much less any
punishment, pain and torment, unless he be previously awakened
from his sleep; so also, believers cannot receive the perfect
heavenly existence, nor unbelievers the eternal death or the
pain of hell, either in the soulor in the body, except they
have first been awakened from the sleep of death, and have
arisen, through the coming of Christ.</p>

<p>Until this last day of judgment the souls of believers are
waiting in the hands of God, under the altar of Christ, to
receive then in their souls and bodies, the rewards promised
them. So also the souls of unbelievers are reserved to be
punished, after the day of judgment, in their souls and
bodies.</p>

<p>And as through the sin and transgression of Adam death came
upon all men; so also the resurrection of the dead came upon
all men through the Saviour Jesus Christ; so that, as in the
springtime the sun, through his glorious radiance and
brightness, draws forth all sweet scented herbs from the earth,
as well as thistles and thorns, which are rejected and reserved
for the fire; so also, shall Christ Jesus, the true Son of
righteousness, in this great last day and hour, through His
glorious coming and appearing in the clouds of heaven, draw
forth from the earth, and cause to arise all men, the wicked
and the pious; so that this great God, through His power and
commanding voice, by which He spake in the beginning: <i>Let
heaven and earth be made;</i> and His word was immediately a
perfect work; and who created all visible things from that
which was invisible, and made man of the dust of the ground;
this same God shall, through His unchangeable power and
almighty word, in the last day, call all men who have been
changed into dust and earth, and have been consumed by fire,
birds, and fishes, from the dust, and cause each to rise with
his own body, flesh, and bones, with which they have served
either their Creator or sin.</p>

<p>And, as a woman in travail, when her hour is come, cannot
retain, but makes haste to deliver, the fruit of her womb, so
also shall in this last hour, death, earth, or hell and sea
make haste to deliver up the great number of the dead which in
them have become dust and ashes, and passed away. These shall
all arise, with their own bodies, incorruptible, which shall
again be united with the soul and spirit, which through death
had been separated from the body, and had remained immortal. At
that time the pious shall be glorified and changed from the
mortal and corruptible into the immortal and incorruptible,
from the weak and frail, into the strong and glorious, being
made like unto the angels of God, and the glorious body of
Christ. Thus shall also those who shall live and remain at this
sudden second coming of Christ from the heaven, be changed and
glorified after the image of Christ.</p>

<p>Of the first or temporal death, which came by the first
transgression, read, "For dust thou art, and unto dust shalt
thou return." Gen. 3:19; 25:33., "And as it is appointed unto men once to die, but after this
the judgment." Heb. 9:27., "For since by man came death, by man came also the
resurrection of the dead." I Cor. 15:21., "For God made not death: neither hath he pleasure in the
destruction of the living." Wisd. 1:13., "Nevertheless, through envy of the devil came death into the
World." Wisd. 2:24; Rom. 5:12.</p>

<p>How at the second coming of Christ the dead shall rise
through Christ, read, "For the Lord himself shall descend from
heaven with a shout, with the voice of the archangel, and with
the trump of God: and the dead in Christ shall rise first." I
Thess. 4:16., "Marvel not at this; for the hour is coming, in the which
all that are in the graves shall hear his voice, and shall come
forth; they that have done good, unto the resurrection of life;
and they that have done evil unto the resurrection of
damnation." John 5:28, 29., "I know that my Redeemer liveth, and that he shall stand at
the latter day upon the earth: and though after my skin worms
destroy this body, yet in my flesh shall I see God: whom I
shall see for myself, and mine eyes shall behold." Job
19:25-27.</p>

<p>Read also: Isa. 26:19; Dan. 12:13; Matt. 22:31; Luke 20:35;
John 6:40; 11:25; I Cor. 15 throughout; Ps. 90:3.</p>

<p>How in the resurrection of the dead, men's vile bodies shall
be glorified, read, "In the resurrection they neither marry, nor
are given in marriage, but are as the angels of God in heaven."
Matt. 22:30., "For our conversation is in heaven, from whence also we look
for the Saviour, the Lord Jesus Christ</p>

<p>who shall change our vile body, that it may be fashioned
like unto his glorious body, according to the working whereby
he is able even to subdue all things unto himself." Phil. 3:20,
21; I Cor. 15:42, 53.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE XXXII</h2> 

<p><i>Of the last judgment; of hell, and the damnation of
unbelievers,</i> we confess: That in the last day, when Christ
Jesus shall appear in the clouds of heaven, with power and
great glory, all nations shall be gathered before His judgment
seat, and He shall separate them as a shepherd separates the
sheep from the goats, placing the sheep on His right hand, and
the goats on His left. Over these Christ Jesus is ordained by
His Father judge of quick and dead, who will regard no person,
nor need the testimony of any; for the heart, mind and thoughts
of every one are manifest before Him as an open book. This
righteous judge will judge the whole world in righteousness,
and as the great Shepherd of the sheep, pronounce an eternal,
irre-</p>

</div><div id="409"> 

<p>vocable judgment upon them, rewarding each in his own body
according to that he hath done. To all the believing, generated
children of God who in this life, as obedient sheep, heard and
followed the voice of Christ, He shall say, "Come, ye blessed of
my Father, inherit the kingdom prepared for you from the
foundation of the world." And to all unbelievers, who would not
have Christ and His word in this life, but, as disobedient,
obstinate goats, rejected them, He will say, "Depart from me, ye
cursed, into everlasting fire, prepared for the devil and his
angels."</p>

<p>In that last day of the Lord the righteous God will deprive
this world of all good gifts; so that the sun, moon and stars
shall lose their brightness, and all the light and glory of the
world shall be changed into everlasting darkness. In that time
the earth, waters and streams shall be turned into burning
pitch and brimstone, which shall burn forever and ever. And,
seeing this earth is called hell in many places in Scripture,
and no other hell being anywhere mentioned, the same is
regarded as hell and the place of damnation; in which fiery
pool and outer darkness all unbelievers will finally have to
suffer the burning of hell and eternal damnation; and thus they
shall at last be punished and tormented with the visible
things, which in preference to the eternal and invisible, they
chose and served in this life.</p>

<p>Into that place of darkness and fiery pool all unbelievers
shall, after the resurrection, their souls having been united
with their bodies, be sentenced by Christ. Then shall be
fulfilled that which is written concerning this last, sad day
of separation; namely, that one of two shall be taken in the
field, in the bed, and at the mill, and be caught up in the air
to meet the Lord; but the others shall be left, and be
sentenced into said pool of darkness, where they shall be
tormented with the devil and his angels, burning, and suffering
in all eternity, forever deprived of all grace and mercy from
God, which is the second death.</p>

<p>Of the last judgment, and how the whole human race shall
appear before the judgment seat of Christ, to receive each in
his own body an eternal sentence, read, "And he commanded us to
preach unto the people, and to testify that it is he which was
ordained of God to be the judge of quick and dead." Acts
10:42., "Because he hath appointed a day, in the which he will judge
the world in righteousness by that man whom he hath ordained."
Acts 17:31; Ps. 7:11., "For we must all appear before the judgment seat of Christ;
that every one may receive the things done in his body,
according to that he hath done, whether it be good or bad." II
Cor. 5:10; Rom. 14:10., "And I saw the dead, small and great, stand before God; and
the books were opened: and another book was opened, which is
the book of life: and the dead were judged out of those things
which were written in the books, according to their works."
Rev. 20:12; Dan. 7:10., "When the Son of man shall come in his glory, and all the
holy angels with him, then shall he sit upon the throne of his
glory: and before him shall be gathered all nations: and he
shall separate them one from another, as a shepherd divideth
his sheep from the goats." Matt. 25:31, 32; 16:27; 26:64; II
Thess. 1:7.</p>

<p>Of hell and the place of damnation, read, "For it is the day
of the Lord's vengeance, and the year of recompenses for the
controversy of Zion. And the streams thereof shall be turned
into pitch, and the dust thereof into brimstone, and the land
thereof shall become burning pitch. It shall not be quenched
night nor day; the smoke thereof shall go up forever." Is.
34:8-10; II Peter 3:10; Sir. 16:18., "And it came to pass as he (Moses) had made an end of
speaking all these words, that the ground clave asunder that
was under them: and the earth opened her mouth, and swallowed
them up, and their houses and all the men that appertained unto
Korah, and all their goods." Num. 16:31, 32.</p>

<p>Read further concerning Sodom and Gomorrah, how they were
overturned and condemned and made an example; and how the earth
is called hell. Gen. 19:24; Jude 7; Acts 2:27, 31; Ps.
16:11., "That they might know, that wherewithal a man sinneth, by
the same also shall he be punished." Wisd. 11:16., "Your gold and silver is cankered; and the rust of them
shall be a witness against you, and shall eat your flesh as it
were fire." James 5:3.</p>

<p>How the souls of unbelievers are reserved by God until the
last day of vengeance, to be tormented with their bodies after
the resurrection, read, "For after death shall the judgment
come, when we shall live again: and then shall the names of the
righteous be manifest, and the works of the ungodly shall be
declared." II Esd. 14:35., "For behold, the day cometh, that shall burn as an oven; and
all the proud; yea, and all that do wickedly shall be stubble:
and the day that cometh, shall burn them up, saith the Lord."
Mal. 4:1., "The Lord knoweth how to deliver the godly out of
temptation, and to reserve the unjust unto the day of judgment
to be punished." II Peter 3:9.</p>

<p>Them"he hath reserved in everlasting chains under darkness
unto the judgment of the great day." Jude 6; Matt. 25:30; Rom.
14:10; II Cor. 5:10.</p>

<p>Read further concerning the fearful and intolerable pain of
hell. Judith 16:17; Mark 9:46; Matthew 22:13; 24:51; 25:30, 41;
Rev. 19:20; 21:8.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE XXXIII</h2> 

<p><i>Of the kingdom of heaven and eternal life,</i> we
confess: That as there is a visible, perishable kingdom of
this, which, through the sins and wick-</p>

</div><div id="410"> 

<p>edness of men, lies in darkness; of which darkness, Satan,
the spirit of wickedness, who works in the children of
unbelief, is the supreme prince, who at last, with all his
servants, shall be brought to everlasting lamentation and
remorse, and shall perish; so also there is an eternal,
immovable and invisible kingdom of heaven, of which Christ
Jesus is King, Prince and Lord; in which all believers shall
live with God forever in everlasting joy. To this glorious
kingdom of heaven, God, through His grace and goodness, from
the beginning of the world, caused the fallen human race to be
called; first through His servants, the prophets, and then
through the Son Himself, who, leaving this His kingdom for a
time, came to preach, and to invite all men, to flee the shadow
of this world, and to make haste to enter into this eternal
rest. For this end the fatlings are killed, and this glorious
feast is prepared; so that men are prevented from making any
excuse concerning the piece of land, the oxen, and the wife,
but the way, door and gate, is open and well prepared.</p>

<p>This glorious kingdom of heaven is typified and represented
to us by a city full of all good things, and the new Jerusalem,
coming down from heaven, which is beautifully prepared by God,
as a bride adorned for her husband; the streets of it are pure
gold, and the gates and walls built of and beautifully adorned
with manifold pearls and precious stones. In this city is the
glory of the Almighty God, which neither Moses on Mount Sinai,
nor the eyes of any mortal man were able to behold. This
brightness and everlasting light shall shine in this city
forever and ever. Here all sorrow and mourning, cold,
nakedness, hunger and thirst shall be changed into everlasting,
satisfying joy and consolation. This glory and joy is so
exceedingly great and unspeakable, that eye hath not seen, nor
ear heard, neither have entered into the heart of man, the
things which God hath prepared for them that love Him; and into
this heavenly state, which is beyond all praise, all believers
and God-pleasing persons shall, at the resurrection of the
dead, when their souls, which through death had become
separated from the body, and until this last time were
preserved in the hand of God, shall be re-united with their
bodies, be caught up from this earthly darkness, to meet the
Lord in the air.</p>

<p>And, as a bride is received by her bridegroom; so also shall
all true children of God then be received with body and soul
through grace, by Christ Jesus, and be admitted to this
glorious joy, where they shall see God as He is, in His
unspeakable glory, together with all the heavenly hosts. Then
shall their robe of mourning, or the mortal clothing of the
flesh be put off, and the immortal be put on; and they shall be
clothed in white, shining raiment, and together with all God's
chosen ones, be fed by the son of God, whom they confessed in
the world, with the hidden heavenly bread. and shall eat of the
tree of life, and drink out of the living fountain of water,
and, being as he angels, shall, with joyful tongues and mouths,
in gladsome voices, to the honor of the lamb, their bridegroom,
sing the new song, with unspeakable, glorious joy, which no one
can take away from them; but they shall be kings and priests of
God, and shall live and reign with Christ for ever and
ever.</p>

<p>May the God of grace and mercy, and of all comfort, who has
from the beginning called us to this His heavenly kingdom and
glory, endow us unworthy children of men with His good Spirit,
make us worthy of Him and draw us Himward, that we may follow
and run after this high prize, and by grace receive the same,
through Jesus Christ, and enjoy it for ever. Amen.</p>

<p>Of the everlasting kingdom of heaven, and its King,
read, "Wherefore we receiving a kingdom which cannot be moved,
let us have grace." Heb. 12:28., "My kingdom is not of this world; if my kingdom were of this
world, then would my servants fight, that I should not be
delivered to the Jews; but now is my kingdom not from hence."
John 18:36., "Receive the gift that is given you, and be glad, giving
thanks unto him that hath called you to the heavenly kingdom."
II Esd. 2:37; Col. 1:13; Ps. 22:28.</p>

<p>Read further how this eternal King, Christ Jesus, at His
second coming from heaven, after the dead shall have arisen,
and the eternal judgment been held, shall receive all the
members of His kingdom in this His everlasting glorious kingdom
of heaven, where they shall behold God in unspeakable
glory."Then shall the King say unto them on his right hand,
Come, ye blessed of my Father, inherit the kingdom prepared for
you from the foundation of the world." Matt. 25:34., "But the righteous live for ever more; their reward also is
with the Lord, and the care of them is with the Most High.
Therefore shall they receive a glorious kingdom, and a
beautiful crown from the Lord's hand." Wisd. 5:15, 16; I Peter
5:4; II Tim. 4:8; Rev. 2:10; Jas. 1:12., "Then we which are alive and remain shall be caught up
together with them in the clouds, to meet the Lord in the air:
and so shall we ever be with the Lord. Wherefore comfort one
another with these words." I Thess. 4:17, 18; I Cor. 2:9; I
Peter 1:8; John 16:22., "Beloved, now are we the sons of God, and it doth not yet
appear what we shall be: but we know that, when he shall
appear, we shall be like him; for we shall see him as he is." I
John 3:2; Phil. 3:20, 21., "When Christ, who is our life, shall appear, then shall ye
also appear with him in glory." Col. 3:4., "Thine eyes shall see the King in his beauty they shall
behold the land that is very far off. Thine heart shall
meditate terror." Isa. 33:17, 18.</p>

<p>Of all who from a true faith shall show forth the required
spiritual virtues, and shall continue to the</p>

</div><div id="411"> 

<p>end in this divine calling, read, "If ye do these things, ye
shall never fall: for so an entrance shall be ministered unto
you abundantly into the everlasting kingdom of our Lord and
Saviour Jesus Christ." II Peter 1:10,11.</p>

<p><i>Here is the patience and the faith of the saints.</i>
Rev. 13:10.</p>

<p>We feel now that we have fulfilled the promise which we made
in the beginning concerning the matter of holy baptism, and
other articles of Christian worship; with which, we trust,
those who fear God and love the truth will content themselves;
hence we conclude this, and proceed to the steadfast martyrs
who in the sixteenth century suffered for the name of Jesus
Christ, and His holy truth.</p>

<p align="left"><br /></p>

<h1>AN ACCOUNT OF THOSE WHO SUFFERED IN THE SIXTEENTH
CENTURY: SUMMARY OF THE MARTYRS IN THE SIXTEENTH
CENTURY</h1>

<p>[Mention of the inquisition which from the year 1492
continued to 1660. It is noticed for the year 1501.</p>

<p>Persecution of the orthodox Christians in Hungary briefly,
and plainly shown, for the year 1507.</p>

<p>Two years after this, there is brought to remembrance
another persecution of the same people, in the principality of
Mecklenburg, near Mooren, two years later, presented and noted
for the year 1509.</p>

<p>Several persons who opposed popery in various points of
doctrine; as, Nicholas Rus, Bernhard Liblinensis, John Picus,
John Hilten, William Budaeus, John Bugenhagius, etc.; some of
whom also felt the sting of the Roman scorpion, referred to in
a note for the years 1509, 1510, 1512, 1513, 1520, etc.</p>

<p>The decree which by the Romanists was published, in the
Netherlands, against all who believed otherwise than the Roman
church, and what misery resulted thereupon, circumstantially
noticed for the year 1521.</p>

<p>In a note for the year 1522 mention is made of Charles
Stadius, and for the year 1524, of Henry Zutphaniensis,
touching their faith and death.</p>

<p>Beginning of the old <i>Martyrs' Mirror of the Defenseless
Christians,</i> together with the emendation from various
creditable chronicles, memoirs, testimonies, etc.</p>

<p>The first martyrs mentioned are Hans Koch and Leonhart
Meister; both of whom lost their lives for the truth of the
holy Gospel, at Augsburg, A. D. 1524.</p>

<p>Then follow so great multitude of professors of Christ, who
gave their lives for His name's sake; as well as so great a
number of accounts of bloody decrees, examinations, sentences,
and memorable memoirs, that it is impossible to enumerate them.
From the year 1524 until 1597, almost until theclose of the
century, the pious martyrs were apprehended, tormented, and put
to death by fire, water, sword, burying alive; with which last
manner of death this century is concluded.]</p>

<p>A great door is opened unto us to the arena of the martyrs
and blessed followers of Jesus. None of the previous
persecutions endured by the orthodox martyrs are to be compared
to the present one. We have come through the time of fifteen
centuries, each consisting of one hundred consecutive years;
but we must confess that we did not meet with what we have
seen, or, at least, that which we shall see here. The length of
the time, the severity of the persecution, and the number of
the martyred persons shall testify to this.</p>

<p>It is true, that fifteen hundred years extend over a longer
period of time than about a hundred and fifty of like years;
and that the persecutions which occurred during this long time,
when put in the balance, would be heavier than this last one,
as well as the number of the persons who were persecuted; but
never in the preceding fifteen centuries did any persecution
continue for so long a time without alleviation; never was
there in so short (though actually long) a time so much
innocent blood shed; never were there in so small a space so
many dark prisons, deadly tribunals, scaffolds, fiery stakes,
and. other instruments of death erected and made use of as were
at this time in Germany and in the Netherlands.</p>

<p>To prove this, without unnecessary words, we will forthwith
enter upon our task, beginning with Germany, and ending with
the Netherlands.</p>

<h2>SEVERE INQUISITION AGAINST. THE BELIEVERS,<br />
ABOUT THE YEAR 1501</h2> 

<p>The inquisition of which we gave an account in the first
book, for the year 1492, continued against the orthodox
believers, as is firmly believed, even until this time; so that
many who were subjected to the same, and remained steadfast,
had to suffer themselves to be put to death; who, in the sight
of God, came to an honorable, but in the eyes of the world, a
shameful and not less miserable end, but who shall hereafter,
with Christ their Saviour (who herein preceded them), be
clothed with everlasting honor and joy, yea, be crowned as
victorious kings in the heavenly Zion, according to His
promise, "Be thou faithful unto death, and I will give thee a crown
of life." Rev. 2:10.</p>

<p>Concerning the beginning of this inquisition see the first
book, for the year 1492, and how the same continued until this
time and long after, compare <i>Hist. Georg., lib. 6. Pieter
Bor, lib. 3. Orsprong der Nederlandtsche Beroeyten, fol. 9-12.
Tooneel Nicol., fol. 87. Guil. Merulae, Tract. 9, 47. Eman. van
Met.</i> (old edition), <i>fol. 40. Retuald. Gonsalv, in de H.
Spanish Inquisition</i> throughout. <i>Hist. Wenc., fol. 187.
Chron. Phil. Mel., lib. 5. Hist.</i></p>

</div><div id="412"> 

<p class="c8">250-410, 155,313</p>

<p><i>Alons. de hlb., lib.</i> 2, with <i>Chron. van Ondergang,
page</i> 899, col. 1, 2, <i>page</i> 900, col. 1, 2.</p>

<h2>PERSECUTION OF THE ORTHODOX BELIEVERS IN<br />
HUNGARY, A. D. 1507</h2> 

<p>That the old Waldenses, or orthodox believers, whose sound
confession we have shown elsewhere, were now severely oppressed
and persecuted in Hungary; insomuch that they were necessitated
to deliver a defense of their faith against the unfounded
accusations on account of which they suffered persecution, to
Uladislaus, King of Bohemia, we have partly shown in the
Account of Holy Baptism, for the year 1507, and it is confirmed
by H. Boxhorn, in his tract concerning this matter, fol.27;
compared with P. <i>J. Twisck, Chron., page</i> 930, col.
2.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER PERSECUTION OF THESE PEOPLE IN THE<br />
PRINCIPALITY OF MECKLENBURG, NEAR<br />
MOOREN, A. D. 1509</h2> 

<p>A. D. 1509, old writers state, that the aforementioned old
Waldenses, on account of the envy of the pope and papists,
could no longer .enjoy their liberty in confessing and
practicing their true belief, in the principality of
Mecklenburg, near Mooren. <i>See the last-mentioned chronicle,
page</i> 937,col. 2, ex <i>Catal. Test., fol.</i> 902.</p>

<p>NOTE. A. D. 1509.-At this time, Nicholas Rus vigorously
taught and wrote against the pope, saying: 1. That letters of
indulgence were nothing but subtle deceptions to rob the plain
and simple people of their money. 2. That the pope does not
have as much power as people suppose. 3. That the popes,
cardinals, bishops, and prelates were leading lascivious lives,
etc. 4. That saints ought not to be invoked.* This Nicholas had
many hearers in the principality of Mecklenburg, but from
necessity, because of the papists, was soon compelled to leave
the place. He went to Wismar, but there also he had no abiding
place. See the authors last mentioned, for the year 1509.</p>

<p>A. D. 1510.-Bernhard Liblinensis taught and wrote at this
time: 1. That it is impossible that the whole world should obey
a single man, as is the pope. 2. That the popes themselves were
not of one mind; for the one prohibits that which another has
instituted to be observed. 3. That therefore it is sufficient
to believe in Christ, and to obey Him alone. <i>Chron. van den
Ondergang, page</i> 939, eol. 2, compared with <i>Catal. Test.,
fol.</i> 911. However, what befell him as punishment from the
pope on this account, is not stated.</p>

<p>A. D. 1512.-John Picus, John Hilton, and others, vigorously
spoke at this time against the abuses of popery, severely
reproving their (the popes) life, deeds, and doctrine. However,
what they suf-</p>

<br /><cite>*This fourth article the writers enumerate as
the third.</cite> 

<p>fered because of this, is not indicated. See the last
mentioned chronicle, <i>page</i> 946, col. 1; also <i>Joh.
Munst., fol.</i> 203, 204.</p>

<p>A. D. 1513.-William Budaeus, a very learned man in France,
wrote at this time in a book: 1. The popes and bishops
originate war between princes and potentates; while they by
rights ought to advise and help to peace. 2. They fill the
world with pride, avarice, gluttony, drinking, lasciviousness,
whoredom, adultery, and other shameful things, surpassing in
these vile deeds the laity. 3. They are Epicures, who do not
care for eternal life, as they show by their works; and they
are to their hearers the cause of eternal damnation. As to the
end or death of this man, however, we have likewise found no
account. Compare P. <i>J. Twisck, Chron., page</i> 949, col. 1,
with <i>Catal. Test., fol.</i> 908. <i>Joh. Munst., fol.</i>
208.</p>

<p>A. D.1520.-John Bugenhagius, surnamed Pomeranus, a
remarkably kind and moral man, was at this time very well known
through his writings. Among other things he says, in a little
book, treating of Unborn Infants, that men erred for twelve
centuries with regard to infants, whom (by rights) they could
not, yet greatly desired to, baptize. Two days before his death
there was an eclipse of the sun. He died at Wittenberg, aged 73
years. Compare the last-mentioned chronicle, <i>page</i> 985,
col. 1, with <i>Leonh., lib.</i> 7. <i>Jac. herh.</i> A <i>f
b., fol.</i> 28, 30, 32.</p><br />
<br />
<br />

<p>The time now draws near, when the account of the last of
those who suffered death, in our old Book of Martyrs begins. We
speak of those who gave their lives for the truth since the
great Reformation, or, at least, since the establishment of the
worship of God in the year 1524, and from that time forward. In
the meantime it will be well for us to notice that the martyrs
of whom we shall speak were of the profession of the Waldenses,
even as were the preceding ones, of whom we have previously
spoken. All the labor which we took upon ourselves from the
middle of the twelfth century, tended to follow the line of
these people. This has been our aim continually up to the
present time, and, in this, as we hope, we have not been
unsuccessful; yea, we trust that we have shown this to a
certainty. In the meantime the intelligent, to whom we gladly
submit the matter, may judge with regard to it. The first work
which is now before us, is to unite the first martyrs with the
last, and to follow up what we have written with that which was
written before. In order to give no offense to any one, we
intend to leave the old accounts unchanged, excepting a few
discrepancies and typographical errors; as well as what we
shall add of our own from the testimonies of old writers; which
shall be plainly distinguished. By following this method, we
hope to accomplish our purpose successfully.</p>

</div><div id="413"> 

<h2>OF THE DECREE WHICH BY THE ROMANISTS WAS<br />
PUBLISHED IN THE NETHERLANDS, ABOUT THE<br />
YEAR 1521, AGAINST ALL WHO BELIEVED<br />
OTHERWISE THAN THE ROMAN<br />
CHURCH; AND WHAT MISERY<br />
RESULTED THEREFROM</h2> 

<p>About A. D. 1521, at the time of Emperor Charles V., a
decree was made and issued by those of the Roman church, on
account of the Lutherans and Zwinglians, against all those who
were opposed to the Roman profession, and hence, also against
the Anabaptists; who were all threatened with cruel punishments
of death, as appears from the following account in the
<i>Chron. van den Ondergang, p.</i> 975, col. 2.</p>

<p>The account is as follows:*"From it was made, A. D. 1521,"
says the writer,"the first prohibition or decree concerning
religion, and brought into the Netherlands without the consent
of the States, etc.; so that they (this and like decrees) were
rather tolerated than confirmed by the states; the more so
since they were greatly favored by the pope and the clergy, as
tending to promote obedience towards the mother-the
Roman-church, and generally no complaint was heard from any of
the common people against it; that is, against the first.</p>

<p>By virtue of this decree all who believed otherwise than the
Roman church, or who had such books in their possession, or
harbored such heretics or people, and all those whom the
magistrates were commanded to apprehend, were strictly
sentenced to death; and not only these, but also all who in any
wise were suspected of heresy; every Roman Catholic being
required to denounce every suspected person, who, upon the
testimony of two witnesses, were, according to the instruction
of the judges, sentenced to death, their property confiscated,
and one third of it given to the accusers and witnesses, though
said witnesses had but little to</p>

<p>say, only so that they were known as good Catholics by their
pastor or priest.</p>

<p>If any one from fear took to flight, no one was allowed to
intercede for him, or plead his innocence, neither the father
for the child, nor brother for brother; but he was condemned on
account of his flight, and his property confiscated.</p>

<p>Though one did even desist from his so-called error, and
suffered himself to be better in</p>

<br /><cite>*In the following a few words are changed,
without altering the sense, however.</cite> 

<p>structed, as it were, by the pastor, according to the Romish
manner, he had nevertheless to die. No greater mercy was shown
him than that he was not put to death by fire, but executed
with the sword.</p>

<p>The women were buried alive, and no judge could mitigate
these decrees, unless he was willing to be regarded as a
protector of the heretics, and be proceeded against as
such.</p>

<p>From this decree (the one first spoken of) made by imperial
power and authority, others were produced, and issued, almost
every year.</p>

<p>And by virtue of these decrees, none might have in his
possession, buy, give, carry, read, or communicate, the
doctrines, writings or books, of the Lutherans, Zwinglians,
etc. (he also makes mention of the Mennonites), or dispute
about them; neither might they confer or dispute with any one
about the holy Scriptures, or read the same to others, except
(Romish) theologians or doctors of divinity, or those who were
properly licensed.</p>

<p>No one was allowed knowingly to receive suspected persons
(called heretics) into his house, to lodge them, to give them
food, clothes, or money; but had to report them immediately,
all on pain of death and confiscation of property.</p>

<p>Extracted from various Biographies of Emperor Charles V,
<i>Chron. Mich., 4th part; Chron. Sleyd., lib. 1,</i> 2,
<i>to</i> 25; <i>Hist. Alons, Ullw, lib.</i> 1-5; <i>Chron.
Hed., fol.</i> 682; C<i>hron. Saxon., fol.</i> 649; <i>Chron.
Franc.</i> (old edition), <i>fol.</i> 62, 63; <i>Chron. Petr.
Bor., lib. 1. Caprit., lib. 3. Pantal., lib. 3; Hist. der Mart.
Doopsges., lib. 1. Eman. van Met., lib. 1; Mer., fol.</i> 960;
C<i>hron. Petr. Scriv., fol.</i> 593; <i>D. Andries Hondd.,
lib. 1, cap.</i> 15; D<i>. Dirck heli., lib.</i> 2; <i>Manl.,
fol.</i> 255; W. <i>Baud., lib.</i> 16, <i>an old chronicle of
the life and deeds of Charles V, throughout, etc.</i></p>

<p>NOTE.-A. D. 1522, Charles Stadius also declared his views,
at this time, among the learned; he secretly held with the
Anabaptists, says Leonhard Krantz in his <i>German Chronology,
lib.</i> 7. Others, however, ascribe a different belief to him,
which is not found with the Anabaptists; namely, that he said,
that Christ, through His blood, had also redeemed the (fallen)
angels. <i>Conrad Schless, 1st part,</i> cap. 5, compared with
P. 7. <i>Twisck, Chron., page</i> 994, col. 2. What happened to
him, however, on account of his belief, is not stated.</p>

<p><i>A. D.</i> 1524.-Henry Zutphaniensis was horribly put to
death for the Gospel of Christ, by Ditmarish peasants. See the
above cited <i>Chronicle, p. 1001, col. 1. Also, Rab., part 3;
Sleyd., lib. 4.</i></p>

</div><div id="414"> 
<a name="413"></a>
<h2>MARTYRS MIRROR<br />
OF THE<br />
DEFENSELESS CHRISTIANS<br />
Old Book<br />
ENLARGED AND IMPROVED FROM VARIOUS CREDIBLE CHRONICLES,<br />
MEMOIRS, TESTIMONIES, ETC.</h2> 

<p>[The following part of Martyrs Mirror was not originally
written by van Braght, but was the outgrowth of a compilation
from different authors, and published in different editions,
which from time to time were enlarged and improved. The
original book, as appears from the writings of Samuel W.
Pennypacker, of Philadelphia, Pa., was published in Holland, in
1562, under the title, <i>Het</i> Offer des <i>Heeren.</i>
Later editions were printed in the years 1567, 1570, 1576,
1578, 1580, 1589, 1595, and 1599. In 1617, a large quarto
edition, containing 863 pages, written by Hans de Reis and
Jacques Outerman, and printed by Zacharias Cornelisz, at Hoorn,
was published, bearing the title, <i>Historie der Warachtighe
getuygen Jesu</i> Christi. This book was succeeded by a folio
volume of ten hundred fifty-six pages, printed at Haerlem, by
Hans Passchiers, von Wesbusch, in 1631, entitled, <i>Martelwrs
Spiegel</i> der Werelose <i>Christenen,</i> that is, <i>The
Martyrs</i> Mirror <i>of the defenseless</i> Christians. This
book, our author, van Braght, embodies as"Second Part," in his
own work under the title of <i>The</i> Bloody <i>Theatre,
or</i> Martyrs Mirror <i>of the defenseless Christians, as</i>
he says, without change, except where some correction was
needed, adding, however, such matter as seemed profitable and
necessary. This will explain to the reader the above
remark, "Old Book."-Publishers.]</p>

<h2>HANS KOCH AND LEONHARD MEISTER, DESCENDANTS OF
THE ANCIENT WALDENSES, BOTH<br />
PUT TO DEATH AT AUGSBURG, FOR THE TRUTH OF THE HOLY GOSPEL, A.
D. 1524</h2> 

<p>From A. D. 1160 until this time (A. D. 1660) we have
followed according to our ability the trail and footsteps of
the ancient Waldenses, of which we have by no means, until this
time, lost sight; neither have we now lost sight of them, but
still keep them in view.</p>

<p>This appeared in the case of two pious men of said
profession. (which agrees with that of the Anabaptists) who,
loving the truth of Christ, which they maintained more than
their own lives, were put to death at Augsburg, in Germany, in
accordance with the rigor of the court, there, in the year
1524.</p>

<p>Concerning this, we read in Jacob <i>Mehrning's History
of</i> Baptism the following words, translated from the
German, "From these Bohemian and Moravian Old Waldensian
brethren afterwards sprang several excellent men; as, among
others, Hans Koch and Leonhard Meister, who were both put to
death at Augsburg, A. D. .* <i>Bapt. Hist., page</i> 748.</p>

<p>NOTE.-The year 1160 was the time in which Peter Waldo
appeared against popery, at Lyons, in France, and made a sound
confession, of which we gave an account in the first book. As
regards his descendants, this Hans Koch and Leonhard Meister
are counted as none of the least of them; as also, afterwards,
Michael Sattler, Leonhard Keyser, John Hut, etc. See Jac.
<i>Mehr., Bacent;t. Hist., page</i> 748.</p>

<br /><cite>*A. D. 1527, the printer had set it; but it is
an error.</cite> 

</div><div id="415"> 

<h2>PRAYER OF HANS KOCH AND LEONHARD MEISTER</h2> 

<p>The following earnest prayer to God was spoken by Hans Koch
and Leonhard Meister before their death, and left for the
consolation of all their fellow believers</p>

<p>O God! behold now from Thy high throne the misery of Thy
servants, how the enemy persecutes them because it is their
purpose to walk in the narrow way, and how abominably they are
scorned. He who learns to know Thee, and holds fast to Thy
words, is despised and scorned by them. O God of heaven! we
have all sinned before Thee; therefore chastise us in mercy. We
beseech Thee, let us enjoy Thy grace, that Thy honor may not be
profaned by us before this world, which now seems determined to
extinguish Thy Word. We might well have peace with them, if we
would not confess Thy holy name, and not believe on Thy Son,
that He atoned for us on the cross, bore our sins, and paid our
debt. The enemy has no other reason for his daily raging
against us, than because we do not fulfill his will, but love
Thee, O God, in our hearts, which neither Satan nor his
adherents can endure. Therefore they compel us with great
distress, and afflict us with much tribulation. Thus, our
misdeed, on account of which the enemy fights so hard against
us, is, that we place our hope in Thee alone, and in Thy dear
Son Christ Jesus, and in the Holy Ghost; therefore we must
suffer reproach, because we do not set ourselves against Thee;
if we would give ourselves up to idolatry, and practice all
manner of wickedness, they would let us live unharmed, in peace
and tranquillity. Therefore, O dear Lord, take up arms for us,
and judge all those who disregard Thy power and might. If we
would deny Thy Word, antichrist would not hate us; yea, if we
would believe his false doctrine, follow his error, and walk
with the world on the broad road, we would have favor with
them; but because we seek to follow Thee, we are hated and
forsaken by the world. But though the enemy brings us to
torment, it does not happen to us alone, but was also done to
Christ our Redeemer; for they afflicted Him first with much
reproach and suffering; and thus it was with all p~hat adhered
to Him, and believed in His Word. Hence Christ says
Himself, "Marvel not, if the world hate you; for it hated me
first; they have not received my words; thus shall they also
not receive your words. If they have persecuted me, they will
also persecute you; and when all these things happen to you,
rejoice and be exceeding glad: for great is your reward in
heaven." Christ comforts us still more through the mouth of His
beloved apostles, saying, "If we suffer with him, we shall also
rejoice with him, and reign in everlasting joy." What matters
it, if we are ridiculed and scorned here for a little while?
since God promises us eternal rest and bliss. O Lord, Thou
seest and hearest the derision and contumely, and the suffering
with which Thy children are afflicted. Thou also knowest their
small and feeble ability;therefore we pray Thee, O God, that
Thou wouldst protect Thine own honor, and sanctify Thy name,
which is now so fearfully profaned by all those who, here on
earth, are of high and low estate. Manifest Thy power, that the
enemy may perceive and understand Thy divine strength, and may
learn to be ashamed. O Lord God, have compassion upon Thy poor
sheep, that are scattered, and have no longer a true shepherd
who will henceforth teach them. Send them Thy Holy Spirit, that
He may feed and satisfy them with Thy grace, and that they may
not hearken to the voice of a stranger, unto the end. O God, in
Thy high majesty, graciously hear our petition, and do not
forsake us, since we are in great tribulation and conflict.
Give us steadfast patience through Christ Thy Son, our Captain,
who can vanquish Satan with all his host. To Him be honor, and
praise to His holy name. Amen.</p>

<p>Matt. 7:14; Ps. 106:6; Dan. 9:5; I Pet. 2:24; Matt. 22:37; I
Pet. 4:3; Matt. 7:13; John 17:14; 1 Pet. 4:1; Isa. 53; Matt.
27; Luke 24:26; John 15:18; I John 3:13; Matt. 5:12; Rom. 8:11;
II Tim. 2:12; John 10:5.</p>

<h2>CASPAR TAUBER, A. D. 1524</h2> 

<p>In this year, also Caspar Tauber, a tradesman and citizen of
Vienna, in Austria, was apprehended for the Christian faith;
and as he faithfully and steadfastly continued to confess
Christ, without apostatizing, he was condemned and burned.</p>

<h2>OF A CERTAIN DECREE WHICH THOSE OF ZUERICH<br />
PUBLISHED AGAINST THE ANABAPTISTS,<br />
A. D. 1525</h2> 

<p>At this time not only the papists, but also the Zwinglians
or so-called Reformed in the city of Zuerich laid their hands
on the innocent and defenseless flock of Christ; yet not, as
far as we can learn, punishing them with death, or depriving
them of life by the executioner, but confining them under
severe imprisonment, until ultimately, as may be inferred,
death followed.</p>

<p>However, in order to determine from this time on, what
course was to be pursued in this matter, the magistrate of said
city ordained, among other things, the following:, "Therefore we ordain and will, that henceforth all men,
women, youth, and maidens forsake Anabaptism, and practice it
no longer from this time on, and that they have their infants
baptized; and whosoever shall act contrary to this public
edict, shall, as often as it occurs, be fined one mark silver;
and if any should prove utterly disobedient and obstinate, they
shall be dealt with more severely; for we shall protect the
obedient, and punish the disobedient according to his deserts,
without bearing with him any longer. Let everyone act
accordingly. All this we confirm by this public document,
sealed with the seal of our city, and given on St. Andrew's
day, A. D. 1525."</p>

</div><div id="416"> 

<p>Compare <i>Chron. van den Ondergang, page 1010,</i> col.
with <i>Henr. Bull. against the Anabaptists, lib. 1, cap.</i>
5, 6; also the open letter of the council of Zuerich, published
A. D. 1525.</p>

<p>The Zwinglian church at Zuerich, where this decree was made,
was at this time only about five years old, and was also
subjected to the hatred and persecution of the papists;
certainly a lamentable matter, that those who had but a short
time before purified themselves in many respects from the
leaven of popery and were opposed to the tyranny of the pope,
should nevertheless continue, in this respect, united with the
papists; that is, in persecuting others who did not have the
same faith with them.</p>

<p>Still, it would have been well if they had stopped with this
decree, since with one mark of silver one could have atoned for
the first offense in neglecting to baptize a child. But this
was not the end of it, as a few years later, especially in A.
D. 1530, when they became a little bolder, they decreed, that
the so-called Anabaptists should be punished with death, which
we shall show in its proper place.</p>

<h2>FELIX MANTZ, A. D. 1526</h2> 

<p>Felix Mantz was also an originator of the Reformation of the
faith, in Germany, and when he, with great zeal, practiced,
taught, and preached, the recognized truth of the Gospel, he
was envied, accused, and imprisoned by his adversaries, and
finally drowned at Zuerich, for the evangelical truth, thus
becoming a witness of the sufferings of Christ. This occurred
in the year of our Lord 1526. He left the following admonition
to his fellow brethren, for their comfort, "My heart rejoices in God, who gives me much knowledge and
wisdom, that I may escape the eternal, and never-ending death.
. Therefore I praise Thee, O Lord Christ from heaven,. that
Thou dost turn away my sorrow and sadness; Thou whom God has
sent me as a Saviour, and for an example and a light, and who
has called me into His heavenly Kingdom, already before my end
has come, that I should have eternal joy with Him, and should
love Him and all His righteousness, which exists here, and
which shall endure forever hereafter, and without which nothing
avails or subsists; hence so many who do not have this in
truth, are deceived by a vain opinion. But alas I how many are
found at the present who boast of the Gospel and speak, teach,
and preach much about it, but are f ull of hatred and envy, and
who have not the love of God in them, whose deceit is known to
all the world, as we have experienced in these latter days,
that those who have come to us in sheep's clothing are ravening
wolves, who hate the pious on the earth, and obstruct the way
to life and to the true sheepfold. Thus do the false prophets
and hypocrites of this world, who curse and pray with the same
mouth, and whose life is disorderly. They call upon the
authorities to kill us, by which they destroy the very essence
of Christianity. But I will praise the Lord Christ, who
exercises all patience towards us; for He instructs us with His
divine graces, and shows love to all men, according to the
nature of God His heavenly Father, which none of the false
prophets are able to do., "Here we must observe this difference, that the sheep of
Christ seek the praise of God; this is their choice, and they
do not suffer themselves to be hindered either by possessions
or temporal good, for they are in the keeping of Christ. The
Lord Christ compels no one to come to His glory; only those
that are willing and prepared attain unto it by true faith and
baptism. Whenever a person brings forth genuine fruits of
repentance, the heaven of eternal joys is, through grace,
purchased and obtained for him by Christ, through the shedding
of His innocent blood, which He so willingly poured out;
thereby showing us His love, and enduing us with the power of
His Spirit, and whoever receives and uses it grows and is made
perfect in God. Only love to God through Christ shall stand and
prevail; not boasting, denouncing, or threatening. It is love
alone that is pleasing to God: he that cannot show love shall
not stand in the sight of God. The true love of Christ shall
not destroy the enemy; he that would be an heir with Christ is
taught that he must be merciful, as the Father in heaven is
merciful. Christ never accused any one, as do the false
teachers of the present day; from which it is evident that they
do not have the love of Christ, nor understand His Word; and
still they would be shepherds and teachers; but at last they
will have to despair, when they shall find, that everlasting
pain shall be their recompense, if they do not reform. Christ
also never hated any one; neither did His true servants, but
they continued to follow Christ in the true way, as He went
before them. This Light of life they have before them, and are
glad to walk in it; but those who are hateful and envious, and
do thus wickedly betray, accuse, smite and quarrel, cannot be
Christians. They are those who run before Christ as thieves and
murderers, and under a false pretense shed innocent blood. By
this we may know them that are not on the side of Christ; for
they, as children of Belial, prompted by envy, destroy the
ordinances of Jesus Christ; even as Cain slew his brother Abel,
when God accepted the offerings of Abel.</p>

<p>With this I will finish my discourse, desiring that all the
pious be mindful of the fall of Adam, who when he accepted the
advice of the serpent, and became disobedient to God, the
punishment of death came upon him. Thus it shall also happen to
those who do not accept Christ, but resist Him, love this
world, and have not the love of God. And thus I close with this
that I will firmly adhere to Christ, and trust in Him, who is
acquainted with all my needs, and can deliver me out of it.
Amen.</p>

<p>I Pet. 5:1; John 16:20; Gal. 5:21; John 5:42; Matt. 7:15; II
Thess. 3:7; John 10:3; Acts 2:38;</p>

</div><div id="417"> 

<p>Luke 6:36; John 8:12; John 10:1; Gen. 4:8; 3:6; I John 2:15;
John 5:42.</p>

<h2>GEORGE WAGNER, A. D. 1527</h2> 

<p>George Wagner, of Emmerich, was apprehended at Munich, in
Bavaria, on account of four articles of the faith.
<i>First,</i> That the priest cannot forgive sins.
<i>Secondly,</i> That he does not believe that a man can bring
down God from heaven. <i>Thirdly,</i> That he does not believe
that God or Christ is bodily in the bread which the priest has
upon the altar; but that it is the bread of the Lord.
<i>Fourthly,</i> That he did not hold to the belief that water
baptism possessed any saving power. As he would not renounce
these articles, he was most severely tormented, so that the
prince felt great compassion for him, and personally came to
him in the prison, and earnestly admonished him thereto,
promising that he would call him his friend all his life time.
Thus also the tutor of the prince, earnestly admonished him to
recant, and likewise made him many promises. Ultimately his
wife and child were brought before him in prison in order, on
this wise to move him to recant. But neither was he to be moved
in this way; for he said that though his wife and child were so
dear to him that the prince could not buy them with all his
dominion, yet he would not forsake his God and Lord on their
account. Many priests and others also came to him, to persuade
him; but he was steadfast and immovable in that which God had
given him to know. Hence he was finally sentenced to the fire
and death.</p>

<p>Having been delivered into the hands of the executioner, and
led into the middle of the city, he said, "Today I will confess
my God before all the world." He had such joy in Christ Jesus,
that his face did not pale, nor his eyes show fear; but he went
smilingly to the fire, where the executioner bound him on the
ladder, and tied a little bag of powder to his neck, at which
he said, "Be it done in the name of the Father, the Son, and the
Holy Ghost;" and having smilingly bid farewell to a Christian,
who was there, he was thrust into the fire by the executioner,
and happily offered up his spirit, on the eighth day of
February, A. D. 1527. The sheriff, however, surnamed Eisenreich
von Landsberg, while returning home from the place!!of
execution, traveling on horseback; purposing to apprehend
others of the brethren, died suddenly in the night, and was
found dead in his bed in the morning, having thus been removed
through the wrath of God.</p>

<p>NOTE.-It is known that Balthasar Pacimontanus opposed infant
baptism, and was therefore burned at Vienna, A. D. 1527. See
<i>second part of Jacob Mehrning's History of Baptism, page</i>
777, <i>ex Bellarm., Tom.</i> 3, <i>lib. 1, de Bdpt., cap.</i>
8.</p>

<h2>MELCHIOR VET</h2> 

<p>This Melchior Vet. was a companion of George Blaurock, who
was of the same faith with him, andalso served with him in the
Gospel. He was burned in the time of Michael Sattler, at
Drache, for the testimony of the faith and of the divine truth,
which he boldly confessed.</p>

<h1>MICHAEL SATTLER, A. D. 1527</h1>

<p>After a long trial an the day of his departure from this
world, the articles being many, Michael Sattler* requested that
they should be read to him again and that he should have
another hearing. This the bailiff, as the governor of his lord,
opposed and would not consent to it. Michael Sattler then
requested permission to speak. After a consultation, the judges
returned as their answer, that if his opponents would allow it,
they (the judges) would consent. Thereupon the town clerk of
Ensisheim, as the attorney of said Governor spoke
thus, "Prudent, honorable and wise Sirs, He has boasted of the
Holy Ghost. Now, if his boast is true, it seems to me, it is
unnecessary to grant him this; for if he has the Holy Ghost, as
he boasts, the same will tell him what has been done here." To
this Michael Sattler replied, "Ye servants of God, I hope my
request will not be denied; for said articles are as yet
unknown to me." The town clerk responded, "Prudent, honorable
and wise Sirs, Though we are not bound to do this, yet in order
to give satisfaction, we will grant him his request that it may
not be thought that injustice is done him in his heresy, or
that we desire to wrong him; hence let the articles be read to
him."</p>

<h2>ARTICLES OR CHARGES AGAINST MICHAEL SATTLER</h2> 

<p>First, that he and his adherents have acted contrary to the
mandate of the Emperor.</p>

<p>Secondly, he has taught, held and believed that the body and
blood of Christ are not present in the sacrament.</p>

<p>Thirdly, he has taught and believed that infant baptism does
not conduce to salvation.</p>

<p>Fourthly, they have rejected the sacrament of extreme
unction.</p>

<p>Fifthly, they have despised and condemned the mother of God
and the saints.</p>

<p>Sixthly, he has declared that men are not to swear before
the authorities.</p>

<p>Seventhly, he has commenced a new and unheard of custom in
regard to the Lord's Supper, placing the bread and wine on a
plate, and eating and drinking the same.</p>

<p>Eighthly, he has left the order, and married a wife.</p>

<p>Ninthly, he has said that if the Turks should invade the
country, no resistance ought to be offered them; and if it were
right to wage war, he would rather take the field against the
Christians than against the Turks; and it is certainly a great
matter, to set the greatest enemies of our holy faith against
us.</p>

<p><i>He was also one of the Waldensian brethren, as Jacob
Mehrning writes. Bapt. Hist., 2d part, page 748.</i></p>

</div><div id="418"> 

<p>Thereupon Michael Sattler requested permission to confer
with his brethren and sisters, which was granted him. Having
conferred with them for a little while, he began and
undauntingly answered thus, "In regard to the articles relating
to me and my brethren and sisters, hear this brief answer, "First, That we have acted contrary to the imperial mandate,
we do not admit; for the same says that the Lutheran doctrine
and delusion is not to be adhered to, but only the Gospel and
Word of God. This we have kept; for I am not aware that we have
acted contrary to the Gospel and the Word of God; I appeal to
the words of Christ., "Secondly, That the real body of Christ the Lord is not
present in the sacrament, we admit; for the Scripture says:
Christ ascended into heaven and, sitteth on the right hand of
His heavenly Father whence He shall come to judge the quick and
the dead; from which it follows, that if He is in heaven, and
not in the breads He may not be eaten bodily. Mark 16:19; Acts
1:9; Col. 3:1; Acts 10:42; 11 Tim. 4:1., "Thirdly, As to baptism we say: Infant baptism is of no
avail to salvation; for it is written, that we live by faith
alone. Again: He that believeth and is baptized shall be saved.
Peter likewise says</p>

<p>The like figure whereunto even baptism doth also now save us
(not the putting away of the filth of the flesh, but the answer
of a good conscience toward God), by the resurrection of Jesus
Christ. Romans 1:1 7; Mark 16:16; 1 Pet. 3:21., "Fourthly, We have not rejected the oil; for it is a
creature of God, and what God has made is good and not to be
refused; but that the pope, the bishops, monks and priests can
make it better, we do not believe; for the pope never made
anything good. That of which the epistle of James speaks is not
the pope's oil. Gen. 1:11; 1 Tim. 4:4; James 5:14., "Fifthly, We have not condemned the mother of God and the
saints; for the mother of Christ is to be blessed among all
women; for to her was accorded the favor of giving birth to the
Saviour of the whole world. But that she is a mediatress and
advocatess, of this the Scriptures know nothing; for shcent;
must with us await the judgment. Paul said to Timothy: Christ
is our Mediator and Advocate with God. As regards the saints;
we say that we who live and believe are the saints; which I
prove by the epistles of Paul to the Romans, Corinthians,
Ephesians; and in other places where he always writes: To the
beloved saints. Hence we that believe are the saints; but those
who have died in faith we regard as the blessed. Luke 1:28;
Matthew ' 1:21; I Tim. 2:5; I Cor. 1:2; Eph. 1:1; Rev.
14:13., "Sixthly, We hold, that we are not to swear before the
authorities: For the Lord says: Swear not; but let your
communication be, Yea, yea; Nay, nay. Matt. 5:34; James
5:12., "Seventhly, When God called me to testify of His Word, and I
had read Paul, and also considered the unchristian and perilous
state in which I was; beholding the pomp, pride, usury, and
great whoredom of the monks and priests, I went and took unto
me a wife, according to the command of God; for Paul well
prophesies concerning this to Timothy: In the latter time it
shall come to pass that men shall forbid to marry, and command
to abstain from meats which God hath created to be received
with thanksgiving. I Cor. 7:2; 1 Tim. 4:3., "Eighthly, If the Turks should come, we ought not to resist
them; for it is written: Thou shalt not kill. We must not
defend ourselves against the Turks and others of our
persecutors, but are to beseech God with earnest prayer to
repel and resist them. But that I said, that if warring were
right, I would rather take the field against the so-called
Christians, who persecute, apprehend and kill pious Christians,
than against the Turks,was for this reason: The Turk is a true
Turk, knows nothing of the Christian faith; and is a Turk after
the flesh; but you, who would be Christians, and who make your
boast of Christ, persecute the pious witnesses of Christ, and
are Turks after the spirit. Ex. 20:13; Matt. 7:7; Tit.
1:16., "In conclusion: Ye ministers of God, I admonish you to
consider the end for which God has appointed you, to punish the
evil, and to defend and protect the pious. Whereas, then, we
have not acted contrary to God and the Gospel, you will find
that neither I nor my brethren and sisters have offended in
word or deed against any authority. Therefore, ye ministers of
God, if ye have not heard or read the Word of God, send for the
most learned, and for the sacred books of the Bible, of
whatsoever language they may be, and let them confer with us in
the Word of God; and if they prove to us with the Holy
Scriptures, that we err and are in the wrong, we will gladly
desist and recant and also willingly suffer the sentence and
punishment for that of which we have been accused, but if no
error is proven to us, I hope to God, that you will be
converted, and receive instruction." Wisd. 6:4; Acts 25:8; Rom.
13:4; Acts 25:11.</p>

<p>Upon this speech the judges laughed and put their heads
together, and the town clerk of Ensisheim said, "O you infamous, desperate villain and monk, shall we
dispute with you? The hangman shall dispute with you, I assure
you."</p>

<p>Michael said, "God's will be done."</p>

<p>The town clerk said, "It were well if you had never been
born."</p>

<p>Michael replied, "God knows what is good."</p>

<p><i>Town Clerk, "You</i> arch-heretic, you have seduced the
pious; if they would only now forsake their error, and accept
grace."</p>

<p><i>Michael:</i> "Grace is with God alone."</p>

<p>One of the prisoners also said, "We must not depart from the
truth."</p>

<p><i>Town Clerk:</i> "You desperate villain and archheretic, I
tell you if there were no hangman here,</p>

</div><div id="419"> 

<p>I would hang you myself, and think that I had done God
service."</p>

<p><i>Michael:.</i> "God will judge aright."</p>

<p>Thereupon the town clerk said a few words to him in Latin,
what we do not know.</p>

<p>Michael Sattler answered him <i>Judica.</i></p>

<p>The town clerk then admonished the judges and said: -"He
will not cease from this talk today; therefore my Lord judge,
proceed with the sentence; I will commit -it to the law."</p>

<p>The judge asked Michael Sattler whether he also committed it
to the law.</p>

<p>He replied, "Ye ministers of God, I am not sent to judge the
Word of God; we are sent to bear witness of it, and, hence,
cannot consent to any law, since we have no command from God
concerning it; but if we can not be discharged from the law,
we are ready to suffer for the Word of God whatever sufferings
are, or may be imposed upon us all for the sake of the faith in
Christ Jesus our Saviour, as long as we have breath within us;
unless we be dissuaded from it by the Scriptures."</p>

<p>The town clerk said, "The hangman shall convince you; he
shall dispute with you, arch-heretic."</p>

<p><i>Michael: ."I</i> appeal to the Scriptures."</p>

<p>Then the judges arose, and went into another room, where
they remained for an hour and a.half, and determined on the
sentence. Matt. 6:10; John 16:2; I Cor. 4:5; John 1:8; Job
27:3.; Acts 25:11.</p>

<p>In the meantime, some in the room treated Michael Sattler
most unmercifully, heaping reproach upon him. One of them
said, "What have you in expectation -for yourself and the
others, that you have so seduced them?" With this, he also drew
forth a sword which lay upon the table, saying, "See, with this
shall they dispute with thee." But Michael did not answer. upon
a single word concerning his person, but willingly endured it
all. One of the prisoners said, "We must not cast pearls before
swine." Matt. 27:14; 7:6.</p>

<p>Being-also asked, why he had not remained a lord in the
convent, Michael answered, "According to the flesh I was a lord;
but it is better so." He did not say more than what is recorded
here, and this he spoke fearlessly.</p>

<p>The judges having returned to the room, the sentence'was
read. It was as follows, "In the case of the Governor of his
Imperial Majesty <i>versus</i> Michael Sattler, judgment is
passed, that Michael Sattler shall be delivered to 'the
executioner, who shall lead him to the place of execution, and
cut out his tongue; then throw him upon a wagon, and there tear
his body twice with red hot tongs; and after he has been
brought without the gate, he shall be pinched five times in the
same manner."</p>

<p>After this had been done in the manner prescribed, he was
burned to ashes as a heretic. His fellow brethren were executed
with the sword, and the sisters drowned. His wife, also; after
being subjected to many entreaties, admonitions and threats,
under which she remained very steadfast,was drowned a few days
afterwards. Done the 21st day of May, A. D. 1527.</p>

<h2>A LETTER WRITTEN BY MICHAEL SATTLER, IN<br />
PRISON, TO THE CHURCH OF GOD AT HORB</h2> 

<p>My beloved companions in the Lord! grace and mercy from God
our heavenly Father, through Jesus Christ our Lord, and the
power of ,their Spirit, be with you beloved of God, brethren
and sisters.</p>

<p>I can not forget you; though I am not present with the body
(Col. 2:5 ), yet I continually care for and watch over you, as
my fellow members, lest the body be taken away, and the whole
body tthe church], with all its members be overwhelmed with
sorrow, especially at this time, when the ferocity of the
ravening wolf has risen to such a pitch; and increases in
power; so that he has aroused also me to fight against him; -
but eternal praise be to God, its,head is completely broken,
and I hope that his whole body shall soon be no more, as is
written.</p>

<p>Dear brethren and sisters, you'well know with what ardent
love I admonished you the last tune 1 was with you, that you
should be upright and godly in all patience and in the love of
God, by which you may be known among this 'adulterous and
ungodly generation, as shining lights (Matthew 5:14) whom God
the heavenly Father has, illuminated with His knowledge and the
light of the Spirit. With like fervency I now beseech and
admonish you; that you walk surely and prudently towards those
that are without as unbelievers, that our office, which God has
imposed upon us, may in no wise be profaned and justly
reproached.</p>

<p>Remember the Lord, who has given you the talent, for Ile
shall require it again with usury: That the one talent rnay not
be taken from. you, put it to usury, according to the command'
of the Lord, who has. given you the talent. Matt., 15:19.</p>

<p>I say to you through the grace of God, that,ye be valiant,
and walk as become the saints of God. Consider what the Lord
metes out to idle servants; namely, to utterly lukewarm and
slothful hearts; unfit and cold for all love to,God and the
brethren. You have experienced what I .now write.</p>

<p>Be admonished by this, lest God let a like punhment come
upon you. Beware, beware of such as as act contrary to the
command of God lest ye learn their abominations; but reprove it
with strict attention, and excommunication, according to the
command of Christ, yet with all love and compassion for their
cold hearts. Matt. 18:17. If you do this, you shall readily see
how the flock of God dwells among the wolves (Acts 20:29), and
shall witness a brief and speedy separation of those who will
not walk in the right paths and living, ways of Christ, namely,
through crosses, misery, imprisonment, self-denial, and
ultimately through death. Then you can present yourselves to
God' your heavenly Father, a pure, godly, true church of
Christ, which</p>

</div><div id="420"> 

<p>is cleansed through His blood (Eph. 5:26), that it may be
holy and unblamable in the sight of God and men, separated from
all idolatry and abomination, and redeemed, that the Lord of
all dominion may dwell in it, and that it may be a tabernacle
unto Him. Beloved brethren, understand whether what I write
unto you be truth, and use diligence to walk according to it.
Let no one divert you from your aim, as has been the case with
some even until now; but go straight on in all patience,
without deviating, that you do not take up the cross which God
has laid upon you, only to lay it down contrary to the honor
and praise of God, and to the transgression and violation of
His eternal, true, just, and life-giving commandments.</p>

<p>Do not become weary, if you are chastened of the Lord (Heb.
12:5); for whom God loves He chastens, even as a father that is
well pleased with his son. To what will you have recourse, if
you would flee from God? What can help you if you forsake God?
Is it not God who fills heaven and earth? Does He not know all
the secrets of thy vain heart, and the lasciviousness of thy
reins? All things are manifest to Him, and there is nothing
concealed from Him. Vain man, whither will you go, that God
shall not see you? Why do you flee the rod of your Father?
(Heb. 12:8). If you will not be chastened according to the will
of the Father, you cannot inherit His riches. Why do you love a
short and transient rest more than the godly and moderate
correction and chastisement of the Lord to your salvation? How
long will you eat flesh of the fat of Egypt? How long will you
be carnally-minded? (Rom. 8:8). The flesh perishes, and all its
glory; the word of the Lord alone abides forever.</p>

<p>Beloved brethren, mark what I write to you; for it is
necessary, since you see that there are but few who will endure
the chastening of the Lord; for by far the greater number when
they suffer a little in the flesh, become faint and weary, and
do no longer look unto Jesus, the Captain and Finisher of our
faith. They also forget all His commandments, and esteem the
jewel which the calling of God every where presents and points
out to those that overcome of small value; but they regard this
temporal rest, which is before their eyes as far better and
more profitable, than the eternal for which we must hope.
Moreover, there are some who, when this is presented to them,
accuse God, though very unjustly, of not being willing to keep
them under His protection. You know whom I mean, take heed that
you have no fellowship with them.</p>

<p>Furthermore, dear fellow members in Christ, be admonished
that you forget not charity, without which it is pot possible
for you to be a Christian flock. You know what charity is, from
the testimony of Paul our fellow brother, who says, "Charity suffereth long, and is kind; charity envieth not;
charity vaunteth not itself, is not puffed up, doth not behave
itself unseemly, seeketh not her own, is not easily provoked,
thinketh no evil; rejoiceth not in iniquity, but rejoiceth in
the truth;beareth all things, believeth all things, hopeth all
things, endureth all things." I Cor. 13:4-7: Understand this
passage, and you will find the love of God and the love of your
neighbor; and if you love God, you will rejoice in the truth,
and believe, hope and endure all that comes from God. In this
way the aforesaid failing will be removed and avoided. But if
you love your neighbor, you will not punish or excommunicate
with fire, you will not seek your own, think no evil, not vaunt
yourselves, and, finally, not be puffed up; but will be kind,
just, liberal in all giving, humble and compassionate with the
weak and imperfect. Rom. 13:8.</p>

<p>This love has been adulterated by some brethren (I know who
they are); they have not been willing to edify one another by
love, but are become puffed up and unprofitable with the vain
knowledge and understanding of things which God would have
remain hidden to all but Himself alone. I Cor. 8:1. I do not
censure nor reject the grace and revelation of God, but the
puffed up make use of this revelation. What would it profit,
says Paul, if I should speak with the tongues of men and of
angels, and understand all mysteries and knowledge, and have
all faith, tell me, what profit is all this, if love be not
exercised? You have experienced what such presumptuous speaking
and ignorance has produced; you still daily see their false
fruits, though they have given themselves to God.</p>

<p>And let no man remove you from the foundation which is laid
through the letter of the holy Scriptures, and is sealed with
the blood of Christ and of many witnesses of Jesus. Hear not
what they. say of their father, for he is a liar; and do not
believe their spirit, for he is entirely swallowed up in the
flesh. Judge what I write to you; take these matters to heart,
that this abomination may be separated far from you, and that
you be found humble, fruitful and obedient children of God.
Beloved brethren, marvel not that I treat this matter with such
earnestness; for I do so not without reason. The brethren have
doubtless informed you that some of us are in prison; and
afterwards when the brethren at Hbrb had also been apprehended,
they brought us to Binzdorf. At this time we met with various
designs of our adversaries. Once they threatened us with bonds;
then with fire, and afterwards with the sword. In this peril I
completely surrendered myself into the will of the Lord, and
together with all my fellow brethren and my wife, prepared
myself even for death for His testimony</p>

<p>and then I thought of the great number .of false brethren,
and of you, who are but few, namely, a little flock; and also,
that there are but few faithful laborers in the Lord's vineyard
(Matt. 9:37); hence I deemed it necessary to stir you up by
this admonition, to follow after us in the divine warfare, in
order that you may comfort yourselves with it, that you may not
become weary of the chastening of the Lord.</p>

<p>In short, beloved brethren and sisters this let</p>

</div><div id="421"> 

<p>ter shall be a farewell to all of you who truly love and
follow God (others I do not know); and also a testimony of my
love which God has given into my heart towards you, for the
sake of your salvation. I did indeed desire, and it would have
been profitable, I trust, if I had labored a little while
longer in the work of the Lord; but it is better for me, to be
released, and to await with Christ the hope of the blessed. The
Lord is able to raise up another laborer to finish this
work.</p>

<p>Pray that reapers may be constrained into the harvest; for
the time of threshing is nigh at hand. Luke 10:2. The
abomination of desolation is manifest among you; the chosen
servants and handmaidens of God are marked with the name of
their Father on their foreheads (Rev. 13:16); the world rises
up against those who are delivered from its error; the Gospel
is proclaimed before all the world, as a testimony against it;
therefore it will be necessary that the day of the Lord do not
tarry.</p>

<p>You know, my most beloved fellow members, that it becomes us
to conduct ourselves in a godly and Christian manner. II Tim.
3:12. Take heed, watch and pray, lest your wisdom bring
judgment upon you. Pray without ceasing (I Thess. 5:17) that
you may stand worthy before the Son of man. Remember your
forerunner Jesus Christ, and follow Him through faith and
obedience, with love and patience. I Peter 2:20. Forget that
which is carnal, that you may in truth be called Christians,
and children of the Most High God. Endure the chastening of
your father in heaven, and turn neither to the right nor to the
left, that you may enter by the door (John 10:1), and will not
have to walk in a strange path, in which sinners, sorcerers,
idolaters, and whosoever loves and makes a lie, must go. Rev.
22:15. Remember our assembly, and strictly follow that which
was resolved on therein; and if anything has been forgotten,
pray the Lord for understanding. Be liberal towards all that
are in want among you (Heb. 13:3), but especially towards those
who labor among you in the Word, and are driven about, and
cannot eat their bread in peace and quietness. Forget not to
assemble yourselves together, but give diligence that you
constantly meet together, and be united in prayer for all men,
and in breaking of bread; and this with the more diligence,
because the day of the Lord is approaching. Heb. 10:25. In this
assembling you will make manifest the hearts of the false
brethren, and will speedily rid yourselves of them.</p>

<p>Finally, beloved brethren and sisters, sanctify yourselves
for Him that has made you holy, and hear what Esdras says, "Look
for your Shepherd; he shall give you everlasting rest; for he
is nigh at hand, that shall come in the end of the world. Be
ready to the reward of the kingdom, . . . . Flee the shadow of
this world, . . . . Arise up and stand, behold the number of
those that be sealed in the feast of the Lord; which are
departed from the shadow of the world, and have received
gloriousgarments of the Lora. laKe my numuci, v JLVIL, and shut
up those of thine that are clothed in white, which have
fulfilled the law of the Lord. The number of thy children whom
thou longedst for, is fulfilled . . . . I Esdras saw upon the
mount Sion a great people; whom I could not number, and they
all praised the Lord with songs. And in the midst of them there
was a young man of a high stature, taller than all the rest,
and upon everyone of their heads he set crowns, and was more
exalted; which I marveled at greatly. So I asked the angel, and
said, Sir, what are these? He answered and said unto me, These
be they that have put off the mortal clothing, and put on the
immortal, and have confessed the name of God: now are they
crowned, and receive palms. Then said I unto the angel, What
young person is it that crowneth them, and giveth them palms in
their hands? So he answered and said unto me, It is the Son of
God, whom they have confessed in the world. Then began I
greatly to commend them that stood so stiffly for the name of
the Lord." II Esdras 2:34-36, 38-47; Rev. 19:12; Matt.
13:43.</p>

<p>Bear in mind most beloved members of the body of Christ,
what I indicate by this scripture, and live according to it,
and if I be offered up to the Lord, do for my wife what you
would for me. The peace of Jesus Christ, and the love of the
heavenly Father, and the grace of their Spirit, preserve you
unspotted from sin, and present you glad and pure for the
beholding of their glory, at the coming of our Lord Jesus
Christ, that you may be found in the number of those called to
the feast (Luke 14:15) of the one essential, true God and
Saviour Jesus Christ, to whom be eternal praise and glory,
Amen.</p>

<p>Beware of false brethren (Acts 20:39); for the Lord will
perhaps call me to Him; so take warning, I wail for my God.
Pray without ceasing for all that are in bonds. God be with you
all. Amen.</p>

<p>Written in the tower at Binzdorf. Brother Michael Sattler of
Staufen, together with my fellow prisoners in the Lord.</p>

<p>Of this hero and witness of Jesus Christ there are also
other writings extant in print, treating of the atonement of
Christ; brotherly union; divorce; of evil overseers, and the
hearing of false prophets.</p>

<h2>LEONHARD KEYSER, A. D. 1527</h2> 

<p>When the believers greatly increased under persecution and
the cross (Ex. 1:12), there was, in Bavaria, a learned priest
of the mass, named Leonhard Keyser, who examined the writings
of Zwingli and Luther, and also went to Wittenberg, where he
conferred with the doctors and commemorated the Supper with
them.</p>

<p>Having returned to Bavaria, he examined the fruits and
doctrine of the Anabaptists, as well as of Zwingli and Luther,
and joined himself under the cross to the separated
cross-bearing church of the Anabaptists, in the year 1525, and
forthwith</p>

</div><div id="422"> <br />
 
<p>continued in his ministry, with great power and zeal,
undaunted by all the tyranny which arose over the believers, in
the way of drowning, burning and putting to death. Acts 9:20.
In the second year of his ministry, Leonhard Keyser was
apprehended at Scharding, in Bavaria, and condemned by the
bishop of Passau and other priests and capitulars, to be burned
on Friday before St. Lawrence day, in August of the same year.
Having bound him on a cart, they took him to the fire, the
priests going alongside, and speaking Latin to him, but he, on
account of the people, answered them in German; even as they
had refused to speak to him in German before the court, which
he had frequently requested. When he came out into the field,
and was approaching the fire, he, bound, as he was, leaned down
at the side of the cart, and plucked a flower with his hand,
saying to the judge, who rode on horseback along side of the
cart, "Lord judge, here I pluck a flower; if you can burn this
flower and me, you have justly condemned me; but,. on the other
hand, if you cannot burn me and this flower in my hand,
consider what you have done and repent," Thereupon the
judge</p>

<p><br />
<br /></p>

<p>and the three executioners threw an extraordinary quantity
of wood into the fire, in order to burn him immediately to
ashes by the great fire. But when the wood was entirely burned
up, his body was taken from the fire uninjured. Then the three
executioners and their assistants built another great fire of
wood, which when it was consumed, his body still remained
uninjured,!!! only his hair and his nails were somewhat burnt
brown, and, the ashes having been removed from his body, the
latter was found smooth and clear, and the flower in his hand,
not withered, or burnt in the least, the executioners then cut
his body into pieces, which they threw into a new fire. When
the wood was burned up, the pieces lay unconsumed in the fire.
Finally they took the pieces and threw them into the river Inn.
This judge was so terrified by this occurrence that he resigned
his office, and moved to another place. His chief servant, who
was with the judge, and saw and heard all this, came to us in
Moravia, became our brother and lived and died piously. That it
might not be forgotten our teachers have recorded this as it
came from his own lips, and now cause it to be promulgated and
made known,</p>

</div><div id="423"> 

<h2>FURTHER OBSERVATION CONCERNING THE DEATH<br />
OF LEONHARD KEYSER</h2> 

<p>Seb. Frank, in his <i>Chron. der Rom. Kett.</i> letter L.,.
gives the following account of this matter, "Having been brought
a prisoner to Scharding, he was taken to the fire by three
executioners; bound cross-wise on a ladder, .and thrust into
the fire. When he called upon Christ Jesus the ropes fell from
his body and were burned; and as he was still alive, he rolled
out of the fire at one side. The executioners instantly thrust
him back into the fire, with hop-poles, that happened to be
there, so that he rolled out on the other side. There the
executioners cut him alive into pieces, which they cast into
the fire, without being able, however, to burn them, as I have
read." etc. Concerning this, see also P. J. <i>Twisck, Chron.,
fol. 1020, col. 2.</i></p>

<h2>THOMAS 'HERMANN, AND SIXTY-SEVEN OTHERS,<br />
A. D. 1527</h2> 

<p>A. D. 1527, Thomas Hermann, a minister of the Gospel and
Word of God, was executed. Some persons had been apprehended at
Kitzbuehl, and, through the tyranny of the authorities, had
been brought to apostatize from the truth. The latter
furthermore brought them into a public place before a great
multitude of people, where the others reviled them shamefully,
and said, "Ali, how finely your teachers and pastors now give
their lives for you!" John 10:11; I John 3:16. Then the
beforementioned Thomas Hermann made his way through the people,
stepped forth and boldly said, "It is the truth which I have
taught you; and I will testify to it with my blood." He was
immediately apprehended, tortured, sentenced to the fire, and
burned. On his way to the place of execution, he composed and
sang a hymn, which is still extant.!!!! They could not burn his
heart; hence, they threw it into the lake which was near the
place of execution. After him sixty-seven of his fellow
believers were executed in the same place. The judge of
Kitzbuehl, who assisted in condemning and putting to death many
of them, and who because of their faith, both before and after,
called them heretics was afterwards suffered by God to come to
such awful disgrace, that he was himself found to be a heretic,
and justly regarded as such by all men; which nevertheless,
occurred not at all on account of the faith, but because God
permitted him to fall into such disgrace, that he came to
reproach and great infamy; also before the world.</p>

<p>The vengeance of God also came upon the townclerk of
Kitzbuehl, who had likewise been instrumental in this shedding
of innocent blood, and had declared that he would not lay down
his head in peace until he had helped to exterminate these
people. For, as he was out riding in a sleigh in the town, and
about to make a turn, the horse threw him against a wall, and
an oak tree in the street, so that his brains were dashed out,
and thus he did notlay down his head in peace, but came to a
terrible end, as the brethren Hans Kitzbuehl and Christian
Haring have testified concerning it.</p>

 
<h1>WEYNKEN, A WIDOW, DAUGHTER OF CLAES, OF MONICKENDAM, BURNT TO DEATH IN THE HAGUE, THE 20TH NOVEMBER, A. D. 1527</h1>

<p>On the 15th of November, 1527, Weynken, daughter of Claes,
was brought prisoner from the castle of Woerden to the Hague,
whither on the 17th day of the same month, came also the count
of Hooghstraten, Governor in Holland. On the 18th, the
aforesaid Weynken was arraigned before the governor and the
full council of Holland. There a woman asked her, "Have you well considered the things which my lords proposed
to you?"</p>

<p><i>Am</i>."I abide by what I have said."</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "If you do not speak differently, and turn from
your error, you will be subjected to an intolerable death."
'</p>

<p><i>Am.</i> "If power is given you from above I am ready to
suffer." John 19:11.</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "Do you then, not fear death, which you have
never tasted?"</p>

<p><i>Am.</i> "This is true; but I shall never taste death, for
Christ says: 'If a man keep my saying, he shall never see
death.' (John 8:51.) The rich man tasted death, and shall taste
it forever." (Luke 16:23. )</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "What do you hold concerning the sacrament?"</p>

<p><i>Am."I</i> hold your sacrament to be bread and flour, and
if you hold it as God, I say that it is your devil."</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "What do you hold concerning the saints?"</p>

<p><i>Am.</i> "I know no other Mediator than Christ." (I John
2:19. )</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "You must die, if you abide by this."</p>

<p>Am."I an i already dead." (Gal. 2:19. )</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "If you are dead, how can you speak?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "The spirit lives in me; the Lord is in me, and I
am in Him." (John 14:<i>20. )</i></p>

<p><i>Ques."Will you</i> have 'a confessor, or not?"</p>

<p><i>Am."I</i> have Christ, to Him I confess; nevertheless, if
I have offended any, I would willingly ask them to forgive
me."</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "Who has taught you this opinion, and how did
you come to it?"</p>

<p><i>Am.</i> "The Lord, who calls all men to Him; I am also one
of His sheep; therefore I hear His voice." (John 10:27. )</p>

<p>Ques."Are you alone called?"</p>

<p>Am."No; for the Lord calls to Him all that are heavy laden."
(Matt. 28:11.)</p>

<p>After many like words Weynken was led back to prison. During
the two following days she was entreated and tempted by various
persons, namely by monks, priests, women, and her nearest
friends.</p>

</div><div id="424"> 

<p>Among others, a woman came to her, prompted by sincerity,
who commiserated her after this manner, "Dear mother, can you not think what you please, and keep it
to yourself? then you will not die."</p>

<p>Weynken replied, "Dear sister; I am commanded to speak, and
am.constrained to do so; hence I cannot remain silent about
it."</p>

<p>Wom."Then, ' I am afraid, they, will put you to death."</p>

<p>Ans."Though they burn me tomorrow, or put me into a bag, I
cafe not; as the Lord has ordained it, so,it must be, and not
otherwise; I will adhere to the Lord."</p>

<p>Wom."If you have done nothing else I hope you will not
die."</p>

<p>Ans."As for me; it matters not.; but when I come down from
the hall, I cry bitterly; and it grieves me to see that these
good men are all so blinded;.I will pray the Lord for them."
.</p>

<p>Two Dominican friars also came to her, the one as a
confessor, and the other as an instructor. The latter showed
her the crucifix, saying, "See, here is your .Lord and your
God." She. answered, "This is not my God; the cross by which I have been
redeemed, is adifierent one. This is a wooden god; throw him
into the fire, and warm yourselves with him." The other asked
her in the morning of the day when she was to die, whether she
would not receive the sacrament, adding that he would willingly
administer it to her. She said, "What God would you give me? one
that is perishable, and is sold for a farthing?" And to
the-priest or monk, who rejoiced that he had read mass that
day, she said that he had crucified God anew. He said:, "It appears to me that you have fallen unto error?"</p>

<p>Weynken replied, "I cannot help it, my Lord and my God, to
whom be eternal honor, praise; and thanksgiving (Rev. 4:11),
has thus given it unto me."</p>

<p><i>Ques." What</i> do you hold concerning the holy
<i>oil?"</i></p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "Oil is good for salad, or to oil your shoes
with." I Tim. 4:4.</p>

<p>In the middle of the week she was brought before the Court,
and when she came into the hall, the monk went up to her, and
held the crucifix before her face, saying, "Do recant before
sentence is, passed." But Weynken turned from the crucifix,
saying, "I adhere to my Lord and God; neither death nor life
shall separate me from Him." (Rom. 8:39.) As she stood before
the judge, the' monk whispered into her ear, "Fall down upon
monk knees, and ask the Lord for pardon." She replied, "Be still: did I not tell you, that you should not draw me
from my Lord."</p>

<p>The Dean of Naeldwijck, subcommissary and inquisitor, read
the sentence, in Latin, from a doc-, ument, and repeating it in
Dutch, said briefly, thatshe was found to be in error with
regard to the sacrament, and that she immovably adhered to it;
hence he decided that she was a heretic, and delivered Weynken
to the secular arm, with the protest that he did- not consent
to her death. He then retired from the council, together with
his two associate ecclesiastics.</p>

<p>The chancellor immediately read, that she, as reported, had
been found' obstinate, which could not be passed by without
punishment, and that she should be burnt to ashes; and all her
property be confiscated. '</p>

<p>Then Weynken said: -"Has all been done now? I beg you all,
that if I have harmed or offended any, you will forgive
me."</p>

<p>The monk then said to her, "Now for once kiss your Lord and
God." She answered, "This is not my Lord."</p>

<p>As they were leaving the council chamber, the monk said to
her that she should call upon our Lady to intercede for
her.</p>

<p>She replied, "Our Lady, is well content in God."</p>

<p><i>Monk:</i> "Call upon her."</p>

<p><i>Weynken, "We</i> have Christ, who sitteth on the right
hand of His Father.; I3 a prays for us, " (Romans 8:34.) ',</p>

<p>On her way from the hall to the scaffold or place of
execution, the monk said, "Behold for once your Lord, who died
for you."</p>

<p><i>Weynken:</i> "This is not my Lord and my God; my Lord God
is in me, and I in Him."</p>

<p><i>Monk:</i> "Coiisider! will you condemn all these lambs,.
and are they all condemned?"</p>

<p><i>Weynken:, "Not</i> all; judgment belongs unto God." (Heb.
10:30. )</p>

<p><i>Monk:</i> "Do you not fear the severe judgment of
<i>God?"</i></p>

<p><i>Weynken, "God</i> comes not to condemn sinners, but to
give them peace." (Luke 9:56.)</p>

<p><i>Monk, "Do</i> you not, fear the sentence which you must
suffer in the fie?"</p>

<p><i>Weynken, "No,</i> for I know how I stand with my
Lord."</p>

<p>On the scaffold there stood one who said to Weynken:
'.'Mother, turn to the people, and ask them,to forgive you, if
you have offended any." This she did. Then she assisted the
executioners to put the powder into her bosom. Here the monk
again tempted her with the cross; but she pushed it away with
her hand, turned around, and said, "How you tempt me? My Lord and my God is above." She then
went .gladly, as though.she were going to a marriage; and her
face did not once be token fear of the fire:</p>

<p>The monk said, "Will you not always and firmly adhere to
God?"</p>

<p><i>Weynken</i> said, "Yes, indeed."</p>

<p><i>Monk, "Now you will</i> have to go into the fire; do
recant, "</p>

<p><i>Veynken, "I</i> am well content; the Lord's will must be
done."</p>

</div><div id="425"> 

<p><i>Monk:</i> "This is not the will of the Lord; the will of
God is your sanctification."</p>

<p>The executioner said, "Mother, cleave to God and do not
suffer yourself to be drawn away from Him."</p>

<p>In the meantime this pious heroine went alone undauntedly to
the bench, and stationed herself at the stake at which she was
to be burned, saying, "Is the bench firm; will I not fall?"</p>

<p>The executioner then made ready the ropes with which he was
to strangle her. The woman took off her neckerchief or veil,
and put the strap around her neck.</p>

<p>Then the monk exclaimed, "Mother Weynken, will you gladly.die
as a Christian?,"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "Yes, I will."</p>

<p><i>Ques."Do you</i> renounce all heresy?"</p>

<p><i>Ans."I</i> do."</p>

<p><i>Monk:</i> "This is well. Are you also sorry that you have
erred?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "I formerly did err indeed, and for that I am
sorry; this however is no error, but the true way, and I adhere
to God."</p>

<p>When she had said this, the executioner began to strangle
her, which when she felt it, she cast down her eyes and closed
them, as though she had fallen into a sleep, and gave up the
ghost, on the twentieth day of November, A. <i>D. 1527.</i></p>

<h2>JOHN WALEN, WITH TWO OF HIS FELLOW BRETHREN, A. D. <i>1527</i></h2> 

<p>In the year <i>1527,</i> there was also a faithful brother
(Rev. <i>2:10),</i> named John Walen, residing in Waterlandt,
on Crommenies Dijck, and with him two of his fellow brethren.
These three were together brought prisoners, for the testimony
of Jesus (Revelations <i>2:13; 20:4),</i> by the bloodthirsty
papists, to Haarlem, and after a little while they were sent
from there to Gravenhage, where they were examined very
severely; yet, through the power of the Most High (Eph.
<i>6:10;</i> Acts <i>1:8),</i> with which they were endued,
they patiently endured it; thus valiantly overcoming by faith
all their inquisitors and tormenters, together with the world
and all visible things. I John <i>5:4.</i> On this account the
rulers of darkness (Eph. <i>6:12),</i> at said place sentenced
them to the following inhuman and tyrannous death: They were
chained to stakes, and a fire built around, them, and thus they
were slowly roasted, until the marrow was seen to trickle down
from their thighbones; thus being burned and roasted till death
came to their relief.7 After their death the garments on the
upper part of their bodies were taken off piece by piece, the
color of the cloth still being recognizable. And as they
suffered all this for the name of Jesus and the Word of God,
and not on account of any misdeed committed, but only in order
to testify to and confess the firm foundation of the truth
before this false and adulterous generation, the Son of God
shallhereafter, when coming in His glory, not he ashamed of
them, but confess them before His Father and His chosen angels,
and crown them with everlasting glory in heaven. Rev. 20:4;,I
Pet. 4:14, 15; Mark <i>12:39;</i> Luke <i>9:26; II</i> Tim.
4:8.</p>

<h2>LEONHARD SCHOENER, A. D. <i>1528;</i> AND AFTER
HIM<br />
ABOUT SEVENTY OTHERS</h2> 

<p>In the year <i>1528,</i> Leonhard Schoener of Becklasburg
was apprehended. He was a minister of God, and was well versed
in the holy Scriptures, and also in the Latin language. He
faithfully taught the true baptism of Christ and His apostles,
the true Lord's Supper, and the articles of the Christian
faith; yea, the Word of God. He also testified against infant
baptism, the abominable sacrament, and other abominations of
antichrist. He had originally been a barefoot friar for about
six years, but beholding the impurity, wantonness, hypocrisy
(Matt. <i>7:15 ),</i> and viciousness of the monks and priests,
and judging their lives by the Word of God, he left the
monastery at Judenburg, in Austria, and went to Nurenberg,
learned the tailor's trade, and then traveling about as
journeyman tailor, he came to Nulasberg, in Austria. There he
heard of Baithasar Heubmer and his baptism, and learned that a
number of the same faith formed a little society at Veyen. He
sought them out, came to them, heard them, and, led thither by
Oswald, was baptized. After this he went to Steyen to work at
his trade; where he taught and baptized, having been elected
teacher by them; and thus teaching and baptizing, he proceeded
through Bavaria, as far as Rothenburg, in the valley of the
Inn; where he was apprehended for his faith, disputed much with
his opposers, and was examined. Previous to this he proposed:
that, if- they regarded his faith and doctrine as wrong and
heretical, they should produce learned persons, doctors, monks
and priests, to dispute with him concerning the matter. Should
he, in disputing on true scriptural grounds, be found to be in
the wrong, they should punish him as unrighteous; and for still
further confirmation of the truth, he offered, in order to
confirm his assertion and his writings, that, if any of the
learned could convince him with the truth of the Word of God,
that his doctrine was not conformable.to the holy Scriptures,
he should, as having been vanquished be severed limb from limb
by the executioner, and, when deprived of all his limbs, have
the ribs torn out of his body, until he should be dead. But if
he should not be able to obtain a hearing and disputation, and
they should judge and put him to death unheard, he asked all
the witnesses of his death, and all those standing by, that
they would be his witnesses before God, in His judgment at the
last day. But by virtue of the mandate of the Emperor, and the
edict of the King of Hungary and Bohemia, he was condemned,
delivered to the executioner, beheaded, and burnt to ashes, on
the fourteenth day of January of said</p>

</div><div id="426"> 

<p>year; at Rothenburg, for the testimony of Christ, from which
he would not depart.' After the death of this Leonhard, about
seventy persons bore witness with their blood in the same'
place. Leonhard Schoener, among others, left the following
admonition for the consolation of all those who suffer for the
name of Christ, "We beseech Thee, O eternal God, incline Thy gracious ear to
us, Lord Sabaoth, Thou Prince of hosts, hear our complaint; for
great distress and affliction prevails, and pride has entered
into Thy heritage. And with it many supposed Christians have
joined, and thus set up the abomination of desolation. Matt.
24:15. .They rage, and destroy the sanctuary of the Christians.
They have trampled' it under foot, and the abomination of
des6lation is worshiped as God. II Thess. 2:4. They have
destroyed Thy holy city, overthrown Thy holy altar, and killed
the servants in it, wherever they could apprehend them. And now
that we remain as a little flock (Luke 12:32), they have driven
us with reproach and disgrace into every country. We are
scattered like sheep that have no shepherd. We have to abandon
house and home, and are as the, night ravens, which lodge in
the rocks. Our chambers are in eaves and cliffs; and snares are
laid for us as for the birds of the air. We go about in
forests, and are hunted with dogs. We are led captive and bound
as dumb lambs which do not open their mouth. Acts 8:32. We are
proclaimed rebels and heretics. We are led as sheep to the
slaughter. Many sit in distress and bonds, and their bodies
have perished. Some have been overcome by the severe
sufferings, and died without any guilt. Here is the patience of
the saints on earth; and thus must we be proved by suffering.
Rev. 13:10. The believers have here been hanged on trees,
strangled, cut in pieces, drowned secretly and openly; not only
men, but also women and maidens have testified here to the
faith that Jesus Christ is the truth and the only way to
eternal life. John 14:6. Still the world is not at rest, but
rages like a madman, and forges lies against us. They cease not
to burn and kill. They make the world too small for us. O Lord
how long wilt Thou be silent with regard to this? How long wilt
Thou not judge the blood of Thy saints? Rev. 6:10. Let it
ascend before Thy throne. How precious in Thy sight is the
blood of Thy saints. Therefore we have in all our distresses a
comforting confidence in Thee alone, and in no other; neither
have we consolation, rest or peace in the earth. But he that
hopes in Thee shall never be confounded. O Lord, there is no
sorrow so great that it can separate us from Thee; hence we
call upon Thee without ceasing, through Christ Thy Son, our
Lord, whom Thou, out of pure grace, hast given us for our
consolation, and who has prepared and made known to us the
narrow path and the way unto eternal life. Matt. 7:14. Eternal
glory, triumph, honor and praise be unto Thee now and in all
eternity, and Thy righteousness abide forever. All nations
blessThy holy name, through Christ, the coming righteous judge
of the whole world, Amen. Acts 17:31."</p>

<p>HANS SCHLAEFFER AND LEONHARD PRICK, IN,THE<br />
YEAR 1528</p>

<p>In the year 1528, Brother Hans Schlaeffer, formerly a Roman
priest, but afterwards a teacher of the Word and Gospel of
Christ, a highly gifted man, was apprehended at Schwartz, in
the valley of the Inn, and with him Brother Leonhard Frick.
They tried him greatly with many severe tortures, and disputed
with him, through the priests, about infant baptism; but he,
orally as well as in writing, showed them his defense, as it is
commanded, and as it will be found, throughout the entire New
Testament, namely: That the Word of God must first be taught,
and that only those who hear, understand, believe, and receive
it, are to be baptized. This is the true Christian baptism, and
no anabaptism. The Lord has nowhere commanded to baptize
infants; they are already the Lord's, and as long as they are
in their innocence and simplicity, they are not to be condemned
at all. They also asked him, in what the foundation of these
anabaptistic sects did properly consist. To this he
replied, "Our faith, practice, and baptizing is founded on
nothing else than the command of Christ: 'Go ye into all the
world, and preach the Gospel to every creature. He that
believeth and is baptized shall be saved.' (Mark 16:16; Matt:
28: 19); and many other Scriptures."</p>

<p>They also asked what design lay concealed under this
anabaptism, since they had thus exhorted them to raise a new
uproar and sedition. But he replied that it had never entered
his heart, to make an uproar; neither had he ever approved of
it in others; yea, he had fled from a house in which they lived
in contention; which he could prove by all with whom he had
ever lived. And there is no other design concealed under it,
than to amend the life, and to forsake the vicious ways of the
world; so that in the doctrine which he teaches, this is not
the least commandment, that we are in duty bound to be subject
to the authorities in all good things; how, then, should he
raise and purpose uproar and sedition?</p>

<p>They also desired to know of him, who were the true authors
and principals of these heretical and chief sects, as they
falsely call them. He told them that he knew of no other
principal of his faith, than the Son of God, Jesus Christ, who
is the true Captain of the faith. I-feb. 12:2. But as, regards
that they are called heretics and seditious sects, he referred
them to the complaints of the Jews against Christ before'
Pilate, and the complaints against the apostle Paul, before
Felix the Governor. Matthew 27:1; Acts 24:2.</p>

<p>He was likewise asked what had caused and induced him to
forsake his office as priest. Concerning this he told them,
that he had done it for conscience' sake, because he knew that
he was in the</p>

</div><div id="427"> 

<p>place of a prophet, and believed that God had sent him.</p>

<p>They would also know of him, who had told him to go into
Germany, to plant the evil seed of Anabaptism. He told them,
that no one had ordered him thither; but that, since he had no
abiding place as yet, and had to go about in misery, he came
there to one of his friends, with whom he stayed, and thence
carne to Schwatz, where he was apprehended, according to and
for the will of God. As to the evil seed of which they spake,
he knew nothing at all; he intended nothing evil, but much
rather the pure divine truth.</p>

<p>After this and other things, when he had been in prison for
some time, and could not be moved, he and his fellow prisoner
and brother were condemned to death, and executed with the
sword at Schwatz, thus testifying with their blood to the
divine truth. He left the following admonitory thanksgiving to
his brethren in Christ</p>

<p>O God, I beseech Thy grace; do not impute to me my sins,
since Christ atoned for them before I was born. Rom. 5:10. I
was Thine enemy, and Thou hast loved and graciously accepted
me, and given for my redemption the innocent blood of Thy
beloved Son (I Pet. 1:19), though I still experience in me much
molestation from remaining sin; which rises in my flesh. For
when I would do good, evil is present with me. Rom. 7:21. For
this cause I am sorrowful, and may well sigh and exclaim with
the apostle Paul: O wretched man that I am! who shall deliver
me from the body of this death? Romans 7:24. And I must reply
to myself and say: But thanks be to God, which giveth me the
victory through Christ. Thou art'my comfort; for if I thus
believe with the heart, I cannot be condemned. The spirit is
willing and ready, but the flesh is weak, so that' if cannot
fulfill the law of God, until Christ strengthens us with His
Spirit: Where human laws rein on earth, there the distressed
minds are seduced; yea, where Christ Jesus is not the sole
Ruler, that which He does riot build, is always torn and
broken; and no building can stand, which He does not uphold.
Though the world highly esteems other things, they are
condemned before God; and hence we all pray together, young and
old, great and small, that Thou, O God, wouldst have compassion
upon us; and send us poor children faithful shepherds and
stewards of Thy gifts (Matt. 9:38), that all human doctrine may
be rooted out;for it is time to truly repent and forsake evil;
for'-the severe judgment of God is at hand. Mark 1:15. Hence
let us take our refuge to the chastisement of our Father, and
submit ourselves in obedience, that He may chastise us as His
children. The world is blinded, sloes not know the Christian
life, abominates it, flees the cross, and thinks it is enough,
if they can talk finely of the Christian life, but do little
indeed., "But, my brethren, he that would be a true Christian, must
put on Christ (Rom. 13:14), and resemble Him in His humble form
while on earth,and be of good cheer in everything which happens
to him in this world: No external semblance of loving Christ,
and of suffering for His name, avails here; we must not be
ashamed of Him, who first loved us (I John 4:19), and gave
Himself for us to an ignominious death. It is in truth not
otherwise, than that judgment must first begin at the house of
God. I Pet. 4:17. Thus the Holy Scripture is now fulfilled, so
that the punishment with which the world is to be visited, is
ready and at hand; hence no one ought to be negligent; for the
sword is drawn, the bow is bent, the arrow laid upon it, and
aim is taken.</p>

<p>By this I do not mean that we are to seek any other refuge,
than to accept the chastisement of the Father, as has been said
above; by Which He refines us for that whereunto He has sealed
us, that we 'may be assured of the eternal and imperishable
kingdom with Him, and forever to possess it with Him in life
everlasting; to this may God strengthen us all. Amen."</p>

<p>LEOPOLD . SCHNEIDER, A. D.. 1528</p>

<p>This Leopold Schneider was beheaded as a pious witness of
the suffering of Christ, for the truth, at Augsburg, A. D.
1528. He left the following admonition for the comfort and
instruction of others, "My God, I will praise Thee in my last hour; Thee who .art
high above in heaven, I will praise Thee with heart and mouth,
for Thou art worthy of it; strengthen my faith (Luke 17:5), now
that I must go on this pilgrimage of suffering; remember me in
mercy in the severe conflict. I commend my spirit into Thy
hands (Luke 23:46); in Thee I rejoice. Christ, help me to stand
in my sufferings. Heavenly Father, forgive them, for they know
not what they do. Because I cannot forsake Thy Word, I am
hated, and they seek to separate my body from the soul.
Therefore I call upon Thee, O God, for gracious help; I trust
in Thee, for I have no other comforter. That which is so
clearly written, Mark 16:16; 'He that believeth and is baptized
shall be saved," can certainly not be contradicted by any one;
hence it is to be heeded. O ye blind, why are you troubled and
grieved because the command of Christ is observed? acquaint
yourselves With the holy Scriptures, and you will find what
Christ the Son of God has commanded us to do. I beseech you
all, beloved brethren and sisters, that you would firmly trust
in God, and let not my bitter death grieve you; 'for God will
richly reward it; we must once take our leave of this vale of
'sorrow. The Scripture clearly declares, that he who would have
laughing and joy here, shall hereafter mourn and <i>weep:
Luke</i> 6:25; we must suffer here with patience; the Lord
grant that it be done innocently. He that would here bring his
gift to the altar; and remembers that his brother has aught
against him, must leave his gift at the altar, and first go and
be reconciled to his brother, and then come and offer his gift.
Matt. 5:23, 24. Therefore,</p>

</div><div id="428"> 

<p>I beseech Thee, O God, graciously to forgive those who put
me to death. I commend my spirit and soul into Thy hand, O God;
deliver me out of all my distresses, and never turn away from
me; deprive my flesh of all its power, that I may overcome and
be victorious in Thee. Amen." Rev. 2:11.</p>

<h2>EIGHTEEN PERSONS BURNED AT SALZBURG; IN THE<br />
YEAR 1528</h2> 

<p>These eighteen persons, besides many others, were kindled
with zeal in the fear of God, and had turned to God from the
world and its idolatry, and been baptized upon faith in Christ,
entering upon obedience towards His holy Gospel. This the
adversaries could not endure; these eighteen were therefore
apprehended, and finally, as they, under many tortures, piously
adhered to their faith, were <i>all</i> sentenced to the fire,
and burned, on the same day, at Salzburg, about the year 1528.
They left the following as a memorial:, "O God of heaven, watch over Thy sheep: who are such a
little flock, that they may not depart from Thee, or be led
astray. Keep them under Thy protection, and deliver them from
this lamentable distress; for the beast pursues . them even
unto death, which they must suffer, for they are thrown into
severe prisons, where they, in the death of the dungeon, sing
praises unto the Lord, and magnify Him with heart and mouth.
Acts 16:25. O Lord, .have compassion therefore, and let this
our complaint come before Thee. Come quickly, and help us poor
children, and sustain us in Thy will. They would drive us from
Thee, and they beset us very hard with their great power and
pomp. O God, grant us Thy divine power; we have no other Lord
in heaven and earth, than Thee. I Cor. 8:6. Grant <i>us</i>
what we desire of Thee. The Lord Christ sends out His
messengers, and through them offers <i>us</i> His heavenly
kingdom, which is derided by the world: but <i>we</i> have
accepted the Lord's kingdom and His grace with great joy and
satisfaction; therefore the priests roar and rage against us,
and terribly hate us. They have greatly hid the truth for more
than five hundred years, and seduced the multitude of men with
false doctrine: they trample the Word of God under their
feet,.and it is despised by them. O Lord, grant that they may
amend their steps and do Thy will., "And is, that which has been witnessed at Salzburg not a
lamentable matter; namely, that eighteen persons were burned
together on the same day, only for the doctrine of Christ, whom
they confessed to be the only Lord? They would not honor the
image, nor worship the beast. They would not receive their
words, nor the mark of antichrist into their hand or on their
forehead. Thereforethey could neither buy, nor sell in the
land; but they adhered to Christ, and received His, mark, and
their names are written in the book of life(Ps. 69:28); as
Christian soldiers they, through grace, obtained the crown." II
Tim. 4:8.</p>

<p>Thus they were burned with fire, and are now awaiting
everlasting joy.</p>

<h2>WOLFGANG ULMAN, A. D. 1528</h2> 

<p>Wolfgang U1man, a celebrated and excellent man in matters of
faith, after maintaining and practicing the faith for some
time, was burned, together with his brother and ten other
persons,</p>

<p>all steadfastly testifying to their faith with death, at
Walzen, about the year 1528.</p>

<h2>HANS PRETLE, A. D. 1528</h2> 

<p>Subsequently also Hans Pretle, who had been a preacher, but
had afterwards become a minister of the church,of Christ,
having exercised his ministry for a time, and pointed many to
the knowledge of the Gospel, was burned for the testimony of
Jesus Christ. Rev. 6:9.</p>

<h2>LITTLE HANS OF STOTZINGEN, A. D. 1528</h2> 

<p>Little Hans of Stotzingen, having been in prison for a time,
for the evangelical truth, at Zabern, Alsace, was finally
condemned to death, about the year 1528. On his way to the
place of execution, he addressed the following admonition to
the <i>peo</i>ple, and was then beheaded with the sword., "In our extremity we now begin to cry unto our God, to
deliver us from all our distress, that our hearts may offer up
to Him a pure sacrifice acceptable in His sight. Rom. 12:1. The
sacrifice which I mean is my whole body, life, skin and bones,
and also wife and children. We are willing to offer up all our
members, love impelling and constraining <i>us.</i> Pharaoh
would fain prevent and alter this; but we care not for it, and
have not the least desire to desist from it, but to bring the
offering before the Lord, and to press our way through with His
assistance (Matt. 1.1:12); He will aid and succor us. Come
hither, beloved brethren, let us valiantly take hold, of the
matter: We are now members of Jesus Christ (Rom. 12:4, <i>5);
He</i> is our Captain (Ephesians 1:22); He has prepared a
glorious crown, with which He <i>will</i> crown those who shall
persevere unto the end. Matt. 10:22. Be of good courage and
undaunted, thou worm Jacob. Isa. 41:14. The Red Sea shall stand
open; if Pharaoh will pursue thee, he will perish in it. Thou
little flock, be not afraid, for it is but a little while here,
and our flesh is of no consequence. But in the city which God
has prepared us in the everlasting kingdom, <i>we</i> shall be
as the angels of God. Heb. 11:10; Matthew 22:30. Who can
estimate their value? This God has promised us; yea, through
His Child, Jesus Christ, He promises us much comfort and joy,
and everlasting rest, if we continue steadfast in Him. iBut we
must also drink the cup of suffering, and suffer with His Son
Christ Jesus (Matt. 20:23), and He will deliver and well succor
us. Though the</p>

</div><div id="429"> 

<p>heathen slay us, He will not forsake us, but break their
power in pieces, snatch us out of their hand, and through grace
gloriously crown us. God is the Lord who can protect. He is
also our shield (Genesis 15:1), since we have Him for a Father,
who is so good and gracious; that though men drive us away from
them, yet will we always adhere to Him. His great power is over
us, and He does not suffer them to faint, who keep His
covenant; therefore, though we be defamed and accused, rejoice
over it in your hearts. Have confidence in God, and He shall
help you. Therefore fear neither pain nor death. I give praise
and thanks to my God, that I have become a sacrifice. I have
long longed for it, for to die is gain for me. Phil. 1:21. O
God, let me partake of the sacrifice of Thy Son Jesus Christ.
Amen." Heb. 9:14.</p>

<p>Thus he offered his neck, and was beheaded for the testimony
of Jesus Christ. Acts 1:8.</p>

<h2>THOMAS, BALTHASAR, AND DOMINICUS, A. D. 1528</h2> 

<p>In the same year 1528, Thomas and Balthasar, both ministers
of the Gospel, and with them one Dominicus, were apprehended,
condemned to death, and burned, suffering it very steadfastly,
for the faith and the divine truth, in the city of Bruenn, in
Moravia. But before they were apprehended, they advised the
council, that they should take care and not shed innocent
blood, for God would not let it go unpunished. Jer. 7:6. One of
the council, named Thomas Pelzer arose and did as though he
were washing his hands, saying, "Thus shall I wash my hands in
their blood, and think to do God service." John 16:2. But a few
days after the judgment of God came upon him. He was found dead
in his bed, beside his wife; and thus by his sudden death, was
not permitted, to see the death of these pious persons, which
struck terror into the hearts of many.</p>

<p>Brother Bastelwart well knew this Thomas Pelzer, who died so
suddenly; and also Brother Andrew Gauper was acquainted with
the circumstance.</p>

<h2>HANS FEIERER, WITH FIVE BRETHREN AND THREE<br />
SISTERS, A. D. 1528</h2> 

<p>About this time also Hans Feierer, a minister of the Word,
and five of his brethren or fellow believers were condemned and
burned for the faith and divine truth, at Munich in Bavaria;
there three sisters, wives of three of them, were drowned, and
boldly, cheerfully, and gladly surrendered their lives, being
willing much rather to lose this temporal life, than to desist
from what God had given them to know. They gave up a' miserable
life, in due time to find another (Matt. 10:39; 24:13; Rev.
2:10), with Christ, and with Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob, and all
the saints and pious, in the kingdom of God, which is promised
to all those who endure to the end.</p>

<h2>THREE BRETHREN AND TWO SISTERS, A. D. 1528</h2> 

<p>A. D. 1528, Three brethren and two sisters were put in
prison at Znaym, in Moravia. There was a judge at Znaym, called
Sir Louis, who greatly hated the brethren, as was manifest in
the imprisonment of these brethren and sisters, With stern
words he asked the council what they intended to do with the
Anabaptist heretics, since' they had a royal command and
mandate, and yet did not have them executed. He said he would
himself go to the king, and inform him of their disobedience;
but if they would have them executed, he would draw the wood to
burn them with his own horses. Thereupon the council answered
and said, "Dear Sir Louis, we will commend them to thee; do with
them as you please; it is committed to you. Then he had the
wood drawn with his own wagon, and caused the three brethren
and two sisters to be burned, who were thus speedily executed,
paying unto God, who permitted this true burnt offering, the
vow made in baptism, and fighting unto death for the divine
truth confessed. '</p>

<p>This Louis, actuated by the hatred and envy of the old
serpent, was not yet satisfied with the blood of the pious~and
innocent sheep of the Lord, and had to fill up the measure of
his judgment. He commanded money to be given to those who
should tell him where the brethren assembled. A house having
been pointed out to him, he took bailiffs and watchmen, and
went with them to the place. There Judge Louis stepped unawares
into an opening before the house, used for letting down wine,
and sprained his foot. He fell down and cried piteously that
they should lift him up, and let the rascals go. The brethren
heard the noise, and escaped from the house. After this Louis
took sick unto death, and as he lay there in his agony and
severe sickness, he suddenly began to exclaim, "Q the Baptists,
the Baptists!" He spoke nothing else, but repeated this cry
innumerable times. Finally he roared like an ox, and like a
wild beast and bit his own tongue, and foam and blood ran out
of his mouth, so that his wife and children could not stay with
him; only his servant woman, who was attached to him, remained
with him until he was strangled in his own blood. This servant
woman related the circumstances to Brother Bastelwart, who was
a minister. All his kindred do not like to have it spoken- of;
and it was a common saying among the people that he had shed
innocent blood. Prov. 6:17; Jer. 7:6; 22:3. And thus God has
often (more than is shown in this book, or can be related)
checked the wicked with like examples, that thereby His work
might make the greater progress among His people, to His
praise, and to the salvation of many who seek that which is
right, and the amendment of life; for if God had not always
sustained His work, the enemy would in the course of time, have
extinguished it, and not have left one spark or germ of truth
remain; but this God does not permit him to do.</p>

</div><div id="430"> 

<p>NINE BRETHREN AND THREE SISTERS, A. D. 1528</p>

<p>In this year 1528, nine brethren and three sisters were
apprehended at Bruck, on the Mur, in Steyermark. They were
condemned for their faith, and taken in bonds out of the city,
to the place of execution; but they were glad and of good
cheer, and said, "This day we will suffer in this place for the
word of God, and offer to Him our sacrifice." Rom. 12:1; II
Tim. 4:6. They also earnestly admonished the lords of Bruck,
that they should know that they rendered themselves guilty of
innocent blood. A ring having been formed, they all knelt down
(Acts 7:60; 20:36), and earnestly prayed to God; that they
might now finish this their evening sacrifice. They then arose
and submitted to the sword. The executioner was sad; for he did
not like to do it. The youngest of them all entreated his
brethren, that, since he felt of good cheer and bold, they
should let him suffer the first pain; he then kissed them, and
said, "God bless you, my beloved brethren; today we shall all be
together in Paradise." Luke 23:43. Thus these nine brethren
were beheaded in a green field; they were so undaunted that it
was astonishing to behold-it. They knelt down; and thus poured
out their blood through the smiting of the sword. The three
sisters were drowned; they would in no wise depart from God and
His truth. The youngest one laughed at the water; which was
seen by many a one there. Some held that the devil had hardened
them; but others were moved in their hearts, so that they
confessed that God must have given this, since otherwise it
could not be possible. Thus they valiantly testified to the
holy and divine truth.</p>

<h2>VILGARD AND CASPAR OF SCHOENECK, ABOUT THE<br />
YEAR 1528</h2> 

<p>These two were beheaded for the truth, at Ries, in the
Fluchtthal, near Brixen, and thus died as faithful witnesses of
Christ, leaving the following admonition to their brethren, "Hearken, all of you, and take to heart, that God will visit
all sinners great and small,. who now despise Him and revile
His name, and do not consider their sinful life. God shall
speedily awaken, and deliver His children. If we consider the
doctrine of the prophets, we see that this is the last time,
and in this time God calls upon all men that they should turn
unto Him (Isa. 45:22), live according to His will, and keep His
commandments; and that if they do this, His wrath shall cease,
and He will be their God and Father; for God, because of His
great goodness, is longsuffering in His judgment; therefore
beware of sin, and do not follow the devil;. but free
yourselves from unrighteousness, and your God will not forsake
you in this last hour; for God is rich and gracious, and with
Him there is much grace; He willingly forgives the sinner who
will forsake his sins, who believes in Christ, and calls upon
His name; to such He will not only, through grace remit his
sins, butalso freely give him the eternal reward. Heed well
these things. Oh all of you who belong to the Church of Jesus
Christ, and have become children of God. Praise God with
shouting, young and old, great and small; you who, have
believed His Ward, love God as His dear children, and walk
before Him with pure hearts, and you shall never be forsaken,
but He will ever preserve you. O God, who art rich in grace,
keep us Thy children, that we may hold to Thee, and that those
who have come to Thee, may not be confounded; lead them
diligently with Thy right hand into the promised land, the
eternal heavenly kingdom. O God, honor be unto Thee in Thy high
throne, who hast given us Christ Thy Son, and imparted divine
grace to us, by which we now confess Thee with heart and mouth,
and are not ashamed to call them our brethren who call upon
Thee in truth as their Father. Praised by Thy holy name,
Amen."</p>

<p>NOTE.-Sebastian Franck relates that the Anabaptists in the
beginning increased by many thousands, so that the world feared
that they would cause an uproar; but of this, as I hear, he
writes, they were found innocent and, were persecuted with
great tyranny; first especially in popedom. They were forcibly
imprisoned, and tormented with the sword, fire, water, and
manifold imprisonments, so that within a few years very many
were put to death. Some compute the number of those put to
death far more than two thousand. They were put to death in
many places; at Ensisheim alone about six hundred were slain,
all of whom patiently and steadfastly suffered as martyrs.</p>

<p>Compare the account of <i>Seb. Franck, Chron,</i> fol.
55,109, with the old <i>Offer-boeck, lib. 1. Leonh.,</i> lib.
7; also <i>Chron. van den Ondergang, p.</i> 1025.</p>

<h2>SIX PERSONS AT BASEL, A. D. 1529</h2> 

<p>In the year 1529, those of Basel imprisoned nine of those
who were baptized according to the command of Christ; six* of
whom, as they write, were banished.</p>

<p>They further write, that at Bomburg, a castle in the
dominion of Basel, some of the chief Anabaptists were
imprisoned by one Bartholomew Sincken who was castellan there.
However, what they ultimately did with them, the record does
not state. Compare this with the account in the preface to the
<i>Offer-boeck der Doopsgesinde, of</i> the year 1615, letter
Y, p. 2.</p>

<h2>HANS LANGMANTEL WITH HIS MANSERVANT AND<br />
MAIDSERVANT, A. D. 1529</h2> 

<p>Hans Langmantel, a wealthy citizen and of noble descent,
during the re-establishment of the churches in Germany,
received with his manservant and maidservant the truth
<i>of</i> the Gospel, and, kindled with zeal, they believed the
truth, forsook their</p>

<br /><cite>*After many disputations three of the nine
apostatized; the rest remaining steadfast, were banished.</cite> 

</div><div id="431"> 

<p>sinful life, and were baptized upon their faith in Christ
Jesus, for the remission and forgiveness of their sins; on
which account all three were imprisoned, and, after .enduring
many assaults and torments, they were finally put to death for
their faith, which they constantly confessed. Hans Langmantel
and his manservant were. beheaded with the sword, while the
maidservant was drowned in the water. When they were still in
severe confinement they sent the following; as a thank offering
and prayer to God, which they made use of in prison, to their
brethren, for consolation, admonition, and as a memorial, about
A. D. 1529., "O God, our heavenly Father, come with the power of Thy Holy
Spirit, that Thou mayest rejoice our mind, heart and soul; give
all three of us a manful heart, that in this anguish we fight
and overcome. Rev. 2:7. Hold us with Thy right hand, for Thou
art our strength; fight the battle for us (Ex. 14:14), and
watch over us in distress, that we may stand in the conflict,
and not go back when it is at its height. Therefore, O Lord,
keep watch over us, and take care of us in this extremity, now
that the wicked rise up against Thy Word, and would drive us
from it. O God, preserve us in Thy keeping, that we may not
faint and abandon Thy Word. Let us enjoy the faithfulness which
Thou hast shown us through Thy Son Jesus Christ; and in order
that we may always earnestly contemplate this, send us Thy Holy
Spirit, and kindle in us the fire of Thy divine love; lead us,
Thou who didst teach it in deed, that we may also exercise
ourselves therein, and observe and practice it as Thy dear
children, that this gift may come upon us, and that, even as we
are called, we may by it order our lives in this Thy truth;
maintain peace and unity, and love one another in truth with a
pure heart. To this end, O God, let the light of Thy divine
glory illuminate its, that we may walk in it. O Lord, keep us
in it as Thy dear children, and let us never become obscured by
the abominable darkness of this world, which has gained the
upper hand with all unfaithfulness, and which will be followed
by death. But Thou, our Father, dost love equity. In Thee there
is no darkness (I John 1:5); but the world is hardened with it.
But Thou art the eternal light, which penetrates the darkness;
that we may no longer be children of the night, but children of
the day. Watch over us with Thy Holy Spirit, and teach us thus
to go in this light with de light and joy according to Thy
divine nature., "O' God, we beseech Thee for one thing more: Send us, to
this end Thy Holy Spirit, endue us with His power, renew our
hearts, and make us strong in Thee, that we may obediently hear
Thee in Thy obedience, and praise Thy name. When this world
rises, and opposes Thy words, so that our soul sighs to Thee in
all severe distresses by which they seek to tear us away, then,
O Lord, grant us to look to Thee for aid, and help us to
overcome: Grant, Lord, that we may not stain ourselves byany
sin or guilt, and take from our flesh the fear by which they
would draw us away, and stop us in this work; that, when they
shall lead us to death, we may not waver in the conflict, but
may go to meet Thee with all the pious in the true, adorned
wedding garment, at the marriage feast, prepared for Thy Son,
when He shall receive His bride with everlasting joy and
delight. Lord, assist us in every anguish and distress, and in
the pain of death; give us the heavenly bread; send us Thy
Comforter, for God is the Comforter of the miserable. He.makes
the poor rich, and strengthens the feeble; He can, refresh .the
weary and give strength to the faint, that they may come to
Thee. Through Thee they overcome, who have now entered the
conflict, to fight for the truth. In Christ, Thy, Son, help us
to win the field on this earth, yea in Him alone. Be Thou alone
our Helper, protect us with Thy sword, that we may together,
as Thy heroes, obtain the crown, and be forever with Thee.
Amen."-</p>

<br />

   <h1>GEORGE BLAUROCK, AND HANS VAN DER REVE, A. D. 1529</h1>

<p>About this, time, George of the house of Jacob, called
Blaurck, having for about two or three years, in Switzerland,
but particularly in the earldom of Tyrol, whither he had gone,
spread and proclaimed the doctrine of the truth, that he might
put his talent to use (Matt. 25:15 ), and by his zeal for the
house of God be a means of salvation, was apprehended with his
companions, at Gusodaum, condemned for the faith, and burnt
alive not far from Clausen, for these articles, namely: That he
had forsaken his office as priest, which he had formerly
exercised in popery; that he disregarded infant baptism, and
taught people a new baptism; that he rejected the mass; that he
likewise rejected the confession of the priests as founded by
them, and that the mother of Christ is not to be invoked or
worshiped. For these reasons he was executed, and laid down his
life, as behooves a soldier and hero of the faith: On the place
of execution he earnestly spoke to the people, and pointed them
to the Scriptures.</p>

<p>The love of the truth having begun to burn among .the
nations, and the fire of God having thus started, many were put
to death for the testimony of the truth, in the earldom of
Tyrol, especially in the following places: In the Gusodein
district: at Clausen, Brixen, Stertzing, Balzen, Neumark,
Katren, Terlen, Gundersweg; in the valley of the Inn; at Imst.
ketersberg, Stejen in the Spruckthal, Schwatz, Rattenburg,
Kufstein and Kitzbuehl. In these places a great multitude of
believers constantly testified with their blood to the truth,
through fire, water and the sword. Thus the people of God, as
well as the great persecution increased daily. Jacob Huter
became one of the overseers and teachers in the earldom of
Tyrol, and not long after, with his people, united with the
church which</p>

</div><div id="432"> 

<p>was in Moravia. After Jacob Huter removed with his people
from the earldom to Moravia, partly compelled by great
persecution, the tyranny in the earldom of Tyrol became daily
more vehement; so that the pious had but few places where they
could remain and many of them were apprehended, and put to
death in various ways, for the faith. To this end the priests
violently and furiously proclaimed from the pulpit, that- care
should be taken, to ferret them out; and to destroy them with
fire and sword. Much money was also repeatedly offered and
promised to those who should inform against then; by means of
which they were several times betrayed. They were sought in
every way, in forests and in houses, wherever their presence
was suspected; in every place, also in closed gardens, which
had to be opened, or they would be broken open, and searched. .
There was a Judas, called Prabeiger, who made use of his subtle
artifice, thinking to obtain a large reward. He went to the
authorities, and betrayed them all, bringing with him bailiffs
and children of Pilate, with swords, spears, and staves, and
went before them, just as Judas the traitor did, Matt. 26:47.
They caught a great number, and dispersed the rest. Not long
after, when they again assembled, another Iscariot, called
George Frueder, manifested himself. He went to the priests,
saying that if they would pay him, he would, go, and none of
the brethren should be able to conceal himself from him. Then
the priests, the generation of the scribes and Pharisees, gave
him money and good wages, and also .a letter. This rogue then
went out, assumed the form and,semblance of an angel, and
visited now and then such as he suspected of having knowledge
of this matter. He inquired everywhere in the Pusterthal, where
the brethren were, and how he could find their, desiring
assistance to this end. With much weeping the rogue made this
request, pretending that he could not rest until he were with
them. Thus he deceived them, so that he finally came to them.
He, appeared before them very sad, humble and tender. As one
who seeks to repent and to amend his way. He then very suddenly
said, "My brethren, grant me this, and wait a little while, and
I will go home and fetch my wife and child." Many thoughts came
to the minister and he said to hint, "If you, are false of
heart, and your intention evil, God will certainly find you,
and you shall speedily bring down' His judgment upon you." But
he said, "Oh no, God preserve me from that; come with Me. into
my house." Thus he went away, and hastened to the judge, the
magistrate, and the priests, who came with force, with swords
and sticks, and apprehended the brethren and sisters.</p>

<p>Several other villains of this class manifested themselves,
especially, one whose name was Peter Lantz, and one named
Pranger. Sonic went about by night with much craftiness, acted
in the same manner, and went to places and houses where they
expected to find these people; but God gave themthe recompense
which they deserved, so that they might have wished that they
had never been born.</p>

<p>Besides the above-mentioned George Blaurock. there was also
.one Hans van der Reve, both of whom belonged to the number of
those who sincerely received the truth of the holy Gospel, and
helped found and build the Christian church, in the time when
the truth had long been obscured in popery and by other errors.
And when they had thus for a time faithfully exercised their
ministry, edified and instructed many, and put their talent
effectually to usury (Matt. 25:15), they were finally
apprehended by the envious children of Cain, and burned at
Clausen, in Etzlandt, A. D. 1529.</p>

<p>And in order to show that in all. .this they rejoiced in
God, and also sought to console and strengthen their brethren,
they left them the following memorial:, "Lord God, I will praise Thee now and until my end; because
Thou hast given me faith, by which I have learned to know Thee.
Thou sendest to me Thy divine Word, which I am able to find and
perceive that it is from pure grace. From Thee, O God, have.I
received it as Thou knowest. -I firmly hope that it will. not
return unto Thee void. Isa. 55:11. O Lord, strengthen my heart
to this. My heart rejoices because I know Thy will. When I felt
the heavy load of sin in me, which exceedingly troubled me (Ps.
3$:6), I would have had to perish and suffer everlasting pain
hadst Thou,C God, not come to me with the Word of Thy divine
grace. Acts 10:37. For this I will now 'magnify and praise Thy
glorious name forever, because Thou dost always show Thyself a
merciful dear Father. Cast me not off but receive me as Thy
child. Therefore I cry unto Thee, help, O Father, that I may be
Thy child and heir. O Lord, strengthen my faith (Luke 17:5).,
else, if Thy help should not succor me, my building should soon
fall. Do not forget me, O Lord, but be with. me always; thy
Holy Spirit protect and teach me,that in all .my sufferings I
may, ever receive Thy consolation, so that valiantly fighting,
in this conflict, I may gain the victory. I Cor. 9:25-27., "The enemy fights a battle with me in the field in which I
now am; he would fain drive me from the field. But Thou, ,O
Lord, givest me the victory. He ran against me with sharp
weapons, so that all my limbs quaked before the false doctrine
and their constraints. But Thou, O Lord, hadst compassion upon
me; and didst help me, Thy son, poor man, with Thy. grace, and
powerful hand, and madest me to overcome. O God, how soon didst
Thou hear me; thou speedily camest with Thy help and turnedst
back mine enemies; therefore I will sing praises unto Thy name
in my heart, and forever spread abroad the grace, which has
come to me., "Now, I pray Thee, Father, for all Thy children; preserve us
all forever from all the enemies of our souls. I must not trust
in the flesh (I Peter 1:24), which perisheth and abideth not;
but I will firmly</p>

</div><div id="433"> 

<p>trust in Thy Word (Ps. 115:9), this be my consolation, on
which I rely; it shall deliver me, from all my distresses, to
everlasting rest. The hour of the last day, to which we all
must come, is at hand. Dear Lord, help us to bear the cross to
the destined place, and turn Thyself to us with all grace, that
we may commend our spirit into Thy hands. I sincerely pray Thee
for all our enemies, O Lord, however many there may be; do not
lay their sins to their charge; Lord, I entreat this according
to Thy will. Acts 7:60. And thus we (I George Blaurock, and
Hans van der Reve) will depart in peace. May the good God
through grace lead us into His everlasting kingdom, as we
firmly trust that He will, and finish His holy work in us and
give us strength to the end, Amen."</p>

<p>This evidently came to pass, when these two so steadfastly
and boldly died and were burned, for the truth.</p>

<h2>HERE FOLLOWS ANOTHER CONSOLATORY ADMONITION LEFT BY GEORGE BLAUROCK TO<br />
HIS DESCENDANTS</h2> 

<p>God administers a righteous judgment (Ps. 7:11; Rom. 2:5),
which no one can set aside, and him who does not His will, He
will judge. But Thou, O Lord; art good, and sufferest Thyself
to be found gracious, and all those who use diligence to do Thy
will, Thou acceptst as Thy children. We justly give praise and
thanks to Thee' through Jesus Christ, for all Thy benefits and
goodness, and beseech Thee to preserve and guard us from sin,
The sinner in this life brings a severe judgment upon himself,
which he shall hereafter regret; for though God faithfully
warns him, yet will he not forsake his sinful life; but when
the Lord shall come in His glory to judge, then shall the
sinner repent; for no excuse will then avail.</p>

<p>He now causes His divine Word to be published, and instructs
men, that they should turn from their sinful life, believe in
Christ, be baptized upon faith, and obey the Gospel. Therefore,
ye children of men, forsake your sins, and remain no longer
hardened, sick wicked and blind; now that you can find the
physiician, who can heal all infirmities, and avail yourselves
of his help without money. Matt. 9:12. Oh, how awful will it be
with the sinner who now refuses help and counsel, when he shall
be sentenced by God into everlasting pain, where he will have
to remain and suffer forever and ever. Matt. 25:46. But Thou, O
Lord, art a righteous God. Thou wilt deceive no one, but wilt
preserve those that sincerely love Thee, from the second
death.</p>

<p>Thou, O Lord, art a strong God, who will cast into hell,
which has now opened wide her mouth, all the wicked and those
who hate and afflict Thy children. But Thy mercy is great over
those who repent, and Thou, through Jesus Christ, forgivest
their sins. This is what God requires: that the whole human
race should fear and love Him, that they should follow His Son
Jesus Christ, and observe His divine doctrine. But when the
sinner is exhorted to the love of God, he shows by the deed
that he considers it a mockery; for this however he shall pay
dearly, for God can not be deceived by appearance.</p>

<p>Antichrist threatens those who fear God with great severity
and ignominy. Therefore we beseech Thee, O Lord, strengthen Thy
feeble vessels: but we know, that if we patiently endure all
this for Thy name's sake, Thou, in Thy faithfulness, wilt not
forsake us; but dost renew and strengthen us daily, that we may
continue on Thy narrow way. Matt. 7:14. We cry to Thee through
Christ, for the sake of His bitter suffering (Isa. 53), in
which we recognize Thy faithfulness and love; and this consoles
us on our pilgrimage. Do not forsake us, Thy children,
henceforth unto the end; but constantly offer us Thy fatherly
hand that we may finish our course; for when we have finished
our course, the crown is prepared by the young man (II Esd.
2:43) who hung on the cross for us, on which he suffered
greatly for our sakes. Grant, O Lord, that we may be thankful,
so that we may joyfully behold Thee, our Father. O Father,
through grace Thou didst choose us, and didst not despise to
put us into Thy work; grant that, when the evening comes, we
may receive the hire with rejoicing. Matt. 20:1, 8.</p>

<p>Through Christ Thy Son make us ready for the heavenly
supper, and clothe us with Thy Holy Spirit. In that supper, Thy
Son, our Redeemer, shall serve us at the table. Luke 12:37. Oh,
how blessed are they which are called to this supper (Rev.
19:9), and who in all sorrow adhere to Christ unto the end,
even as He steadfastly suffered for us on the cross; and thus
it is with all His followers on the earth; and all who shall
keep their wedding garment undefiled to the end. Upon their
heads the young man shall set crowns. But he who is not clothed
with this garment, when the King will inspect His guests, shall
be sternly reproved, bound hand and foot, and cast into outer
darkness. O Lord, give us true love so to walk, that when we
come we will not find the door closed, as was the case with the
foolish virgins, who had no oil in their lamps, and said, "Lord,
open to us," but could not go in: but that we may happily watch
with the five wise virgins, and may also enter into the
glorious marriage feast of eternal heavenly joy, when the King,
with His trumpets, shall call and assemble His elect.
Therefore, O Zion, thou holy <i>church of</i> God, see that
thou hold fast unto the end that which thou hast received, and
keep thyself unspotted from sin, and thou shalt, through grace,
receive the eternal crown. I Cor. 9:25; II Tim. 4:8.</p>

<h2>VIGIL PLAITNER, A. D. 1529</h2> 

<p>In the year 1529, Brother Vigil Plaitner, a minister of
Jesus Christ, at Scharding, in Bavaria, was condemned and
executed, after great steadfastness</p>

</div><div id="434"> <br />

<br />

 <h1>VIGIL PLAITNER, A. D. 1529</h1>

<p>In the year 1529, Brother Vigil Plaitner, a minister of
Jesus Christ, at Scharding, in Bavaria, was condemned and
executed, after great steadfastness</p>

<p>(Matt. 24:13), for the faith and the divine truth. He would
depart neither to the right hand nor to the left, and did not
love his life unto death (John 12:25), but surrendered it for
Christ, in order that in the abode of the righteous above he
might receive it again forever with all the saints and pious.
II Peter 3:13.</p>

<h2>LOUIS, AND TWO OTHERS, A. D. 1529</h2> 

<p>In this year also a brother named Louis,* a minister of
Jesus Christ, learned and well versed in the Hebrew, Greek, and
Latin languages, and experienced in the holy Scriptures, was
executed with the sword, at Constance, on the lake of the same
name, after being long imprisoned there. At his departure he
gave many excellent instructions, so that many were astonished,
and were moved to weep with him.</p>

<h2>JOHN HUT, A. D. 1529</h2> 

<p>In this year, John Hut,** a faithful minister of Jesus
Christ, was apprehended for the divine testimony, at Augsburg,
in Swabia, where he was brought into a tower. Finally.they
ceased their severe questions and tortures, and he was left lie
as one dead. Then they went away, leaving a light in the
prison, near the straw, by which the straw was set on fire.
When they returned to the tower they found him dead. They then
carried him, dead as he was, in a chair on a wagon, before the
court, where he was condemned to be burned. His son, Philip
Hut, fell asleep in the Lord, in the church at Heim. This John
Hut composed a hymn of thanksgiving, which we sing at the
memorial or supper of the Lord; besides this he composed one or
two other hymns.</p>

<h2>WOLFGANG BRANDHUBER, HANS NIEDERMAIR, AND<br />
MANY OTHERS, ABOUT SEVENTY IN<br />
ALL, A. D. 1529</h2> 

<p>In this year, also Brother Wolgang Brandhuber of Passau, and
Hans Niedermair, both ministers of the Word and Gospel of
Christ, were apprehended, together with many of the pious at
Lintz, in the country above the Enns, for the divine truth;
they were condemned to fire, water and the sword, and were
immediately executed, in all over seventy persons. Among these
also Peter Niedermair of Hirschberg, at Gminden, was
apprehended, on St. Andrew's eve, A. D. 1529, and though, in
the extreme fear of death, he was tempted in various ways, yet
he remained faithful and constant. Rev. 2:10; Matt. 10:22.
Ultimately, through the providence of God, he was set free,
after being imprisoned there for over three years.</p>

<br /><cite>*Louis belonged to the church of the Waldenses,
whose sound faith we have shown elsewhere. See the author cited
below, in the satne place.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* This John Hut was also one of the old
Waldensian Brethren. See Bapt. Hist. p. 748.</cite> 

<p>Concerning said Wolfgang Brandhuber, writings are still
extant in the church, how faithfully he taught the Christian
church, and also said, that in everything which is not contrary
to God, we should be obedient and subject to the authorities,
and that he strictly held to the true baptism of Christ, and to
the true Lord's Supper, rejecting infant baptism, the
sacrament, and other antichristian abominations and anathemas,
as is shown by his writings, which are still extant.</p>

<h2>CARIUS PRADER, WITH SEVERAL OTHER PERSONS,<br />
A. D. 1529</h2> 

<p>About this time also Carius Prajer, a minister of the church
of God, in the country of Salzburg, and several other persons
were shut up together in a house and burned. A hymn is still
extant in the church which this Carius composed.</p>

<h2>SEVEN BRETHREN, A. D. 1529</h2> 

<p>These seven brethren were executed together on the same day,
with the sword, for the evangelical truth, at Gmuend, in
Swabia, and thus steadfastly testified with their blood to the
name of Christ, <i>A.D.</i> 1529. The account of it is as
follows, "I could not forbear to acquaint my brethren with What is
taking place here in Germany, even as it is known to many how
the world rages and storms against the true believers, and how
she robs the servants of God of life and property. For God,
graciously looking down upon the children of men, gave them, in
the midst of their blindness, His brightly shining Word for a
light, that believing it, we should avoid all sin and shame.
Many recognized this Word as the truth, accepted it with the
mouth, and were called Christians, but continued nevertheless
in their sinful life, supposing that the bare name was
sufficient, if only the semblance existed. Afterwards the Lord
so ordered it that His Word did effectually work in some, so
that, in the language of the prophet Isaiah (Isa. 55:11), it
accomplished that whereunto God sent it, and did not return
unto Him void, but guided many into the right way. And thus,
those who sought to live faithfully, were hated, and despised
as anabaptists by the rest, just as though they had apostatized
from God, and turned to Belial; while they earnestly sought and
desired nothing else, than to keep God's commandments with His
assistance, according to all their ability (I Cor. 7:19);
and,yet they were reproachfully stigmatized as anabaptists,
-they who sincerely forgave every one, assisted their neighbors
by lending to them without usury, and prayed for their
persecutors and enemies (Matt. 5:44), as was seen at the hour
of their death, and who thus attested their faith with the
deed, as was publicly witnessed, A. D. 1529, in the town of
Gmuend, where the enemy employed manifold wiles with some of
them, to terrify them, without being successful however. There
they had</p>

</div><div id="435"> 

<p>apprehended a lad only fourteen years old, whom they put
into the tower, where he lay very severely confined almost a
year, suffering many an assault, but always remaining
immovable, however frequently they came to him, to induce him
to forsake his faith, with him six other brethren, pious men,
were apprehended and imprisoned in the tower for life. There
they together praised God (Acts 16:25 ), and comforted one
another; and God assisted them with His grace, so that they
faithfully adhered to the faith, and did not allow themselves
to be moved either by threats or terrors. When the time of
their departure from this world drew near, their death sentence
was read to them, and it was added, that if they would desist
from their faith, they need have no fear, but might return home
to their wives and children. The prisoners turned to their
enemies, and replied, "We have committed our wives and children
to God, who is well able to preserve them; hence cease these
words; for we are willing and ready to die." A ring was then
drawn on the spot, as is customarily done at executions, with
the sword. As this lad stood in the ring, to be beheaded, a
count rode up to him into the ring, and thus addressed him, "My
dear child, desist from this error, and I will give you a
prebend, and always keep you with me." The youth
replied, "Should I love my life (John 12:25), and therefore
forsake my God, and thus seek to escape the cross? this I must
certainly not do; thy wealth can be of no help to either of us,
but I expect a better in heaven." Thus the youth fearlessly
replied, adding,"in the kingdom of my Father, who has chosen
me, and who can order and equalize all things as is best. Hence
cease these entreaties; to Him who has always fed and sustained
me, I desire to show obedience also in this my last distress.
To Him we must call from the bottom of our heart, when the hour
is at hand, that we may depart with good cheer out of this
world. If we do not depart from Him, He will give us the
everlasting, glorious crown."</p>

<p>At this a great tumult arose among the people, r*h spears
and other weapons, and each spoke of the hatter as he
understood it. And thus they died through the sword, as pious
heroes, and became a sacrifice unto the Lord, as faithful
witnesses of Jesus Christ, A. D. 1529.</p>

<p>While these seven brethren were still in prison, they
together, each giving his own mind, wrote and practiced the
following, and sent it to their brethren.</p>

<p>The first made the following prayer, "Out of the depths of my
soul I cry unto Thee, O God; hear my cry. Send Thy Holy Spirit,
even as Thou, Ch Christ, hast until now not withdrawn, but
graciously imparted Him to me. We rely on what Thou hast
commanded us; .but the heathen seek to kill us." Ps. 130:1.</p>

<p>The second prayed, "The flesh is weak, O Lord; Thou well
knowest that it fears the least pain; hence, fill us with Thy
Holy Spirit, which we entreat of Thee from the bottom of our
hearts; so that we may continue steadfast unto the end, and
cheerfully and valiantly enter upon the suffering which now
awaits us, and that we may fear no agony or pain." Matthew
26:41; 10:22.</p>

<p>The third prayed, "The spirit is willing and ready to desire
the suffering. O Lord, hear our prayers, through Jesus Christ
Thy Son. We also pray for our enemies, who, alas! are so
ignorant, that they do not know what they are doing, and are
not mindful of Thy wrath." John 15:16; Matt. 5:44; Luke
23:34.</p>

<p>The fourth prayed, "We beseech Thee, O Father, and dear Lord,
through Christ Thy Son, increase Thy little flock. Kindle in
them and also in us Thy divine life, and our hearts will
rejoice; for after this our hearts do hunger and thirst." Matt.
6:9; Luke 12:32; I I Cor. 3:18; Matt. 5:6.</p>

<p>The fifth prayed, "O God, Thou hast received us in grace, and
made us Thy ministers. Through Thy divine assistance we have
also willingly fulfilled Thy ministry in our weakness. Preserve
us still further firm in Thy Word; we desire to obey Thee also
henceforth; come to our aid, and be our Comforter." I Cor.
1:4.</p>

<p>The sixth prayed, "Thou Lord God art my Protector; we will
cleave to Thee, and then pain will not seem severe to us;
though they deprive us of our life, Thou hast prepared it for
us forever in heaven, and though here we suffer reproach and
pain, it shall not be in vain."</p>

<p>The seventh said, "The body, life, soul, and all members we
have received from Thee O God; these we will now offer up to
Thee, to the praise of Thy holy name. It is only (lust and
ashes. We commend our spirits into Thy hands. Amen." Romans
12:1; Gen. 1:7; Luke 23:46.</p>

<h2>ANNA OF FREIBURG, A. D. 1529</h2> 

<p>This Anna of Freiburg was zealous in the fear of the Lord
and as she believed in Christ, and, was baptized upon faith in
Him, and thus sought to arise with Christ; and walk in newness
of life, the adversary could not endure it; therefore Anna was
envied, accused, 'apprehended by his ministers, and after
steadfastly suffering many torments, sentenced to death, and
drowned in the water, and afterwards burned with fire. This
happened at Freiburg, in the year 1529. When she was about to
die, she spoke the following prayer to God, and left these
admonitions to all descendants., "Dear, eternal heavenly Father, I call upon Thee, from the
depths of my heart; do not let me turn from Thee, but keep me
in Thy truth unto my end. O God, keep my heart and mouth; guard
me, that I may never separate from Thee, on account of
impending sorrow and anguish, or any manner of distress; keep
me cheerful and glad in my sufferings: Eternal God, my dear
Father instruct and teach -me, Thy poor, unworthy child, that I
may heed Thy ways and paths. 0 Father, this is my</p>

</div><div id="436"> 

<p>sincere desire, that through Thy power I may press even unto
death, through all sorrows, sufferings, anguish and pain, and
in this let me persevere, O God, that I may not be separated
from Thy love. There are many who now walk in this way; but the
cup of suffering is given them to drink. We are also accused of
false doctrine, in order to draw us from Christ our Lord. But O
God, I lift up my soul unto Thee and trust in Thee in every
adversity; do not let me be confounded, lest my enemy exalt
himself over me in this earth. I am now imprisoned here by him,
but, O God, I sincerely wait for Thee with great desire, until
Thou wilt awaken, and deliver Thy prisoners. O dear heavenly
Father, make us prepared with the five wise virgins (Matt.
25:2), that we may prudently wait for the bridegroom with .His
heavenly host. 0 heavenly King, feed and refresh us according
to the spirit with Thy heavenly meats, which never perish but
abide in life eternal; for if Thou shouldest withdraw Thy food
from us, all that we do, would with ourselves be in vain and
perish. But, through Thy grace, we trust in Thee, that we shall
not fail. I do not doubt in the least, the power of God; for
His judgments are honored. He will forsake no one who firmly
holds to Him in faith, and seeks to walk in His true ways. Heb.
13:5; Matt. 7:14. 0 ye Christians, rejoice (Phil. 3:1), and
always be of good cheer in the Lord Jesus Christ; may He
increase love and faith in us. God comfort us by His holy word,
irl which we may firmly trust. I commend myself to God and His
church; may. He be my Protector today, for His holy name's
sake. O my Father, let it be done through Jesus Christ,
Amen."</p>

<p>Thereupon she voluntarily submitted to death, and was
drowned in the water, as mentioned above.</p>

<h2>DANIEL KOPF, WITH TWO. BRETHREN AND FOUR<br />
SISTERS, A. D. 1529</h2> 

<p>Daniel Kopf, a minister of the Word, was apprehended with
six other persons, at Bairisch-Graitz, in Steyermark; he and
two brethren were sentenced to the sword, while the four
sisters were drowned. They testified with their body and life,
that this is the true way (Matt. 7:14; John 14:6) to eternal
life in Christ Jesus, and though the executioner, fire, water
and the sword sought to turn them away, they would nevertheless
adhere to it as long as breath remained in them. Of this
Daniel, writings are also extant in the church, concerning
baptism: and other points; as well as four hymns composed by
him.</p>

<h2>FOUR BRETHREN AND FOUR SISTERS</h2> 

<p>In the year 1529, four brethren, named Wolfgang of Mos,
Thomas Imwald of Aldein, George Frick of Wirzberg, and Mankager
of Fuessen also four sisters, Christina Tolinger of Penon, a
widow, Barbara of Thiers, Agatha Kampner ofBreitenberg, and her
sister Elizabeth, were apprehended in the Ful, in Elschland,
and led up to the castle, where they died on the sixteenth of
November. Each: was separately examined concerning their faith
in the following articles</p>

<p>Brother Wolfgang of Mos confessed that on the Sunday after
the feast of our Lady; it was just one year that one Michael
(who was afterwards executed with fire for this matter, at
Goffedaum, and testified to the truth) presented and taught to
me, Wolfgang, Martin . von Neck, and another, the Gospel and
the Word of the Lord, and then rebaptized all three of us
according to the command of God. Matt. 28:19. He further said
that he did not believe in infant. baptism, that God the Lord
had said nothing of it, nor had Christ commanded it. Matthew
15:13; 28:20; Mark 16:19. He also confessed that Christ is not
bodily in the host, when it is consecrated by the priest.
Furthermore; he said that. he did not believe in fast days,
Sunday, and other feast days, otherwise than in the manner
spoken of in the New Testament.</p>

<p>Thomas Imwald of Aldein confessed that he had been baptized
before St. Ulric's day, at Breitenberg by a teacher who had
formerly been a priest, but had forsaken his office as priest,
and whose name was George Blaurock, from Switzerland. Of .the
mass, also, he, believed that it is nothing but a human
invention , and institution, and not a commandment of God.
Concerning the sacrament he did not.believe that the priests,
by their consecrating or blessing, could bring our Lord God
into the host, or change it; and he also showed them, that
Christ was to be received in the Word, .and that the bread is
only a sign and memorial. Neither does he believe in the
confession as it is instituted by the priests; as it is not
used according to-the command of God. Again, to our Lady he
assigns the,position to which God has chosen her; he believes
that she was a virgin and, the mother of, our Redeemer. He was
furthermore asked whether if their number had become great,
they would not have attempted to bring someone's country or
people over to their faith by force. He answered, "No, that they
did not believe in compelling any one to it; since God desired
a willing and unconstrained heart; and Himself had constrained
no one, but the Lord gave it into their minds." .</p>

<p>George Frick of Wirzberg, a tailor, confessed thation last
St. Gallus' fair he was rebaptized by one Benedict, who
belonged to their faith,- at Philip Kopfler's in the Ful. He
also did not believe that the priests could bring our Lord God
into 'the host, or change Him into bread, since God had neither
commanded nor instituted the mass, but the sacrament was only a
bread of, remembrance. In confession he likewise did not
believe; for how can one forgive sins, who is himself _a
whoremonger and idolater. II Pet. 2:19. Concerning our Lady he
believed that God favored her and that before and after the
birth she was a virgin; for God is able to do more than this.
Again he would adhere to his</p>

</div><div id="437"> 

<p>God, and not depart from this faith, but that the will of
God should be done. Matt. 6:10.</p>

<p>Mankager of Fuessen, a journeyman shoemaker, confessed that
in the forepart of the summer, about St. James' day, he was
baptized, at George Karniter's of Kunen, by one George of Chur,
in Switzerland, who had been a priest, but had resigned said
office, and was burned in the summer, at Clausen. He did not
believe in infant baptism, nor in the mass; neither did he
believe that our Lord God is in the sacrament. He believed that
Mary the mother of Christ, was a pure virgin; but the idea of
her intercession, as well as that of the saints, he rejected,
since Christ is the Mediator, between God and men. I Tim. 2:5.
In the auricular confession of the priests he did not believe
at all. Again, concerning Sunday he said, that God Almighty, in
the beginning, in six days, created the world, and rested on
the seventh; hence the origin of Sunday; there he would let it
rest,-work was not prohibited, but we should rest and fast from
sin. He further declared that in the forenoon the priests
committed idolatry, and in the afternoon fornication, and what
he confessed with the mouth, he would testify to with his
blood, and would not depart from the faith, but firmly adhere
to it unto his end.</p>

<p>Christina Tolinger, of Penon, confessed that Brother George
Blaurock baptized in her house with the true Christian baptism.
Concerning the sacrament as used by the priests, she did not
believe at all, that they can bring our Lord God into the host
or wafer; it is only bread, and the performance of the priests
is in every respect a deception. As to whether infants were
worthy of salvation without baptism, the Lord said, "Suffer
little children, and forbid them not to come unto me; for of
such is the kingdom of heaven." Matt. 19:14. The priests
baptize the infants, and have much unnecessary care while they
are in their infancy; but though they wash them from sin, they
do not attempt to draw them away from sin. Regarding our Lady
she believed that she is the mother of Christ and a pure
virgin. Matt. 1:23. In confession as used by the priests, she
did not believe; if one confesses his sins, and forsakes and
desists from them, it is a true confession. Concerning holidays
and Sundays she said that in six days God the Lord created the
world, and rested the seventh day; and that the other holidays
had been instituted by popes, cardinals, and archbishops. and
that she did not believe in them. Since she lived in the world,
she observed them as others did, to avoid giving offense;
however, none is condemned for working. Again, the priests
commit idolatry in the forenoon, and fornication in the
afternoon. With the help and grace of God she intended to die
in this her resolution.</p>

<p>Barbara of Thiers, wife of Hans Portzen confessed that about
last St. Michael's day she was baptized with the true Christian
baptism, at Craum on the Moss, near Eintempichel, by a teacher
ofthe Word of God, named Benedict. Again, she did not believe
in the idolatrous sacrament of the priests, nor in the mass;
since the priests commit idolatry in the forenoon, and
fornication in the afternoon. In confession as used by the
priests, she did not believe. Concerning our Lady, she had
nothing to say. Regarding Sundays and holidays, she said that
God the Lord had commanded to rest the seventh day, and there
she would let it rest. With the help and grace of God she
intended to adhere to this, and to die therein; since it was
the true faith and the right way in Christ.</p>

<p>Agatha Kampner of Breitenberg confessed that next Christmas
it would be about a year since she was baptized, in
Switzerland, in a place called Auf der Tiefe, near St. Gall, by
one Brother Topigh, a teacher of the Word of God. She did not
believe in infant baptism, though they had all been baptized.
If children die in or before baptism, they die in innocence,
and are the Lord's. She did not believe in the mass, since
Christ did not say to His disciples, "Go and read mass;"
but, "Go, and preach the gospel." Matt. 16:15. Concerning the
sacrament she said that since in the creed it is confessed that
He (Christ) sitteth at the right hand of His heavenly Father,
whence He shall come to judge the quick and the dead, she
believed in no wise that He permitted Himself to be changed by
the priests, into the host or bread. Regarding our Lady she
said that she believed that she brought forth Christ the Lord,
who alone has redeemed us, and that the Word of God became man
in her and suffered for us on the tree of the cross. John 1:14.
As regards holidays, she said that one day is not any holier
than another, and that Sunday was ordained for the purpose of
assembling together, preaching the Gospel, and speaking of it;
but that it was abused through drunkenness and other forms of
wickedness. With the help and grace of God she would
steadfastly adhere to this her faith.</p>

<p>Elizabeth, sister of the afore-mentioned Agatha, confessed
that in the early part of the summer she was baptized at
Breitenberg, by Brother Blaurock, according to the command of
the Lord Christ, in the name of the Father, the Son, and the
Holy Ghost. In the sacrament and mass of the priests she did
not believe, since it is not found that God commanded it.
Concerning our Lady she believed that she brought forth Christ
our Redeemer, and was a virgin; and that the saints had indeed
to enter [into the kingdom] through tribulation (Acts 14:22),
like we and others; but that they are intercessors, she did not
believe; since Christ has reserved to Himself all power in
heaven and earth. As to holidays, she esteems none more highly
than the rest, but that we should always wait for the great day
of the Lord, and rest from sin. To this she would constantly
adhere. Thereupon they were executed as those who truly loved
God (Luke 10:27), and as innocent sheep of the Lord; and their
names are written in heaven.</p>

</div><div id="438"> 

<h2>ANNA MALER, AND URSULA, A. D. 1529</h2> 

<p>In the year 1529, two sisters, Anna Maler, and Ursula, were
condemned to death for the divine truth, and drowned in the
water, at Hall, in the valley of the Inn, and thus, though
women, they were manful and valiant in God, so that many were
amazed at their steadfastness, that thus in life and death they
testified to the divine truth, as is declared by those who knew
them, and are still alive:</p>

<h2>NINE BRETHREN, SEVERAL SISTERS, AND ANOTHER<br />
SISTER, A. D. 1529</h2> 

<p>About the year 1529, the knowledge of the truth began to
shine also in the places on the river Rhine, so that divine
zeal and the fire of God arose, which the priests, by
instigating the authorities, strenuously attempted to stop.
First nine brethren and several sisters were apprehended for
the faith, in the city of Altzey, without the order of the
Elector or Palsgrave, simply through the instigation of the
priests, and the aid of the nobility. They lay in prison for a
considerable time, and as they were waiting how to deal with
them, the Burgrave at Altzey inquired of the Palsgrave, his
prince and lord, what he should do with them. The prince
answered him that they had a court of justice at Altzey, and
that he should let them examine and judge them. The Burgrave
did so, and brought</p>

<p>them before the court of justice, which, however, would not
sentence them, because they had been apprehended simply for the
sake of their faith, and no other cause of death existed. Acts
18:15, 16. In the meantime an imperial diet was held, at which
the Pals-rave, stated that he had some prisoners who had been
apprehended on account of their faith for Anabaptism; and asked
how he should deal with them. The matter was committed to the
four inquisitors, as they are called; whom, however, they
referred to the mandate of the Emperor, where they would
sufficiently find what imperial constitutions, institutions and
ordinances were made concerning such; according to which they
should deal with them.</p>

<p>For the constitution clearly implies that each and all
Anabaptists and anabaptized, whether men or women, if
possessing reason, and of adult age, are to be executed with
fire, the sword, or some other way according to the character
of the persons; and that wherever they were found, they should
be brought before the court, accused, and convicted, and be
judged or dealt with in no other way, on pain of severe
punishment.</p>

<p>Moreover, when they would not apostatize, the mandate was
also read to them; upon which without further sentence, they
were led out to death, by virtue of the imperial mandate. The
brethren were executed with the sword, but the sisters drowned
in the horse pond. While they were yet imprisoned, a sister
came to them, and comforted the sisters (Matt. 25:39); she told
them valiantly and firmlyto adhere to the Lord, and not to
regard these sufferings, for the sake of the eternal joys which
should follow. II Cor. 1:5. When this was noticed she was also
very speedily apprehended. She was afterwards burned, because
she had thus comforted and strengthened the others.</p>

<h2>TWO OTHER BRETHREN, AND TWO SISTERS,<br />
A. D. 1529</h2> 

<p>Thus they meant to extinguish the light of the truth and the
fire of God; but it was kindled only the more. They then
apprehended a man, a woman, a manservant and a maidservant.
Whoever embraced the faith, and desired to separate from the
ways, society and idolatry of the world, was apprehended by
them. In several places they filled all the prisons with them,
intending to deter them by fear; but they sang and rejoiced in
prison, so that their enemies who had cast them into prison
were more troubled and afraid than the prisoners. They knew not
what to do with them, especially since it was only on account
of the faith.</p>

<h2>ABOUT THREE HUNDRED AND FIFTY PERSONS PUT<br />
TO DEATH FOR THE FAITH, NEAR ALTZEY,<br />
PURSUANT TO THE IMPERIAL MANDATE, A. D. 1529</h2> 

<p>The Palsgrave, then, in pursuance with the imperial mandate,
in a short time, caused about three hundred and fifty persons
to be executed for the faith; especially his Burgrave at
Altzey, namely Dietrich von Schoenburg, caused many in the town
of Altzey to be beheaded, drowned and otherwise put to death;
even as the lords who came to the church, and at that time were
residents in Altzey, saw themselves how thev were taken from
the houses in which they were known to be, and led as sheep to
the place of execution. They could in no wise be persuaded to
apostatize, but went joyfully to meet death; while the others
were being drowned, and executed, the rest who were yet alive
and waited for death sang until the executioner took them. They
were very steadfast in the truth confessed, and, assured in the
faith which they had received from God, conducted themselves as
valiant soldiers. Matt. 10:22. All the learned and great of
this world were confounded by them. I Cor. 1:25, 26.</p>

<p>Some whom they did not wish to execute they tortured and
maimed their bodies; of some they cut oil the fingers, others
they burned crosses on their foreheads, and subjected them to
much wanton injury; so that even the aforesaid Burgrave
said, "What shall I do? the more I cause to be executed, the
more they increase." Ex. 1:22.</p>

<p>This Burgrave Dietrich, who had shed much innocent blood,
died a sudden and terrible death, as he was rising from his
table. <i>Chron. van den Ondergang, page</i> 1029, cot. 1, from
the old <i>History o</i> f <i>the Baptist Martyrs, lib.
1,</i></p>

</div><div id="439"> <br />
<br />

<h2>PHILIP OF LANGENLONSHEIM, A. D. .1529</h2> 

<p>One of the last brethren whom they executed in the town of
Creitze, was Philip of Langenlohsheim. When the executioner
struck off his head, something flew into his face, so that he
put up his hands to it, which was well noticed by the people;
however they knew not what it was, or why he did it. Then the
saying went abroad that something like a black hen had
fluttered before his face, so that he defended himself with his
hands; some said that the blood had squirted into his face; and
though he himself knew best what it was, it was nevertheless
seen afterwards, what it must have been: for the executioner's
nose dropped off close to his face. Thus God punished and
visited him, because of the innocent blood, with which he had
stained his hands to so large an extent (Prov. 6:17); and God
openly and palpably made known thereby, how greatly they
oppressed the pious. The Palsgrave also was terrified and
troubled in various ways, so that afterwards he had no longer a
desire to wash his hands in innocent blood, and would have
given much, if it had never taken place.</p>

<h2>GEORGE BAUMAN, A. D. 1529</h2> 

<p>About this time, a brother named George Bauman was
apprehended at Banschlet, in Wurtemburg, for the faith and the
Word of God. The nobleman whose subject he was, kept him
imprisoned for a time, and also 'had 'him dreadfully racked and
tortured, and did so much to him, by imprisonment, torture and
pain, and also by various promises, so that they persuaded him
and gained his assent to follow them. They then demanded of
him, that he should recant in church, and confess that he
desisted [from his faith], which he did once or twice; went to
church, and performed that for which his consent had been
extorted from him. In the meantime he came to himself, and
considered the honor of God and His holy name, and also whither
he was going.</p>

<p>Hence, when he came to church the third time for
recantation, he said to the priest and the bystanders, "You have
condemned me and through pain and fear prevailed upon me to
follow you; but now I renounce and revoke it all, and I am
sorry that I did it." Thus he began, and confessed anew that
this was the divine truth and the true faith; yea, the way to
life in Christ, and that, on the other hand, the idolatrous
life and ways of the world are a delusion and contrary to God.
In this his faith and confession he intended to continue and
persevere unto the end. For what should the priests and
servants wait any longer? hence they quickly apprehended him
again, and he was speedily sentenced to death. When he was led
out to the place - of execution, he sang joyfully on the way.
It' was very muddy in the village, but he walke.1 briskly
nevertheless; so that his shoes remained fast in the mud; but
he took no notice of it, left them there, hurried on to the
place of execution,and sang for joy that God had again given
him such courage and heart. Thus he was beheaded with the
sword. The nobleman who caused his execution, and nearly all
who had sat in judgment, and condemned him, died almost
everyone of them a miserable death, and came to a dreadful end,
so that their happy days in this world terminated in
sorrow.</p>

<h2>THE SECOND EDICT BY THOSE OF ZURICH, IN<br />
WHICH ALL SO-CALLED ANABAPTISTS ARE<br />
THREATENED WITH DEATH,<br />
A. D. 1530</h2> 

<p>There has existed, writes a certain author, in the Zwinglian
churches, from their beginning, a great hatred and bitterness
against the Anabaptists, or more properly speaking, against
those baptized according to the ordinance of Christ as history
certifies; by which they commenced very early to tyrannize over
them; for we believe the Zwinglian church was not yet ten years
old when said abuse occurred. Yet it did not stop at this, but
they proceeded, the longer, the worse, in this tyranny; so that
those of Zurich, A. D. 1530, emitted an edict very much like
the bloody decrees of the Roman Emperor, in which they write as
follows, "Therefore we strictly command all the inhabitants of our
country, and those who are in any wise united with them,
particularly high and low magistrates, bailiffs, constables,
judges, elders of churches, and ecclesiastical officers, that,
if they hear of any Anabaptists, they give us information
concerning them; by virtue of the oath with which they are
bound to us; that they nowhere tolerate them, or allow them to
multiply; but that they apprehend them, and deliver them to us;
for we shall punish with death, according to the purport of our
laws, the Anabaptists with all those who favor them or adhere
to them; and we shall also punish without mercy, according to
their deserts, as having violated the faith and oath which they
swore to their authorities," those who assist, and do not
report, drive away, or bring as prisoners to us, all such
persons.</p>

<p>This we have taken word for word fronh the edict, as
Bullinger (contra, etc.) has cited it. Compare the note in the
preface to the <i>Oferboeck der Doopsgesinde, A. D. 1615,
letter Y, with P. J. Twisck's, Chron., p. 1031,</i> col. 1,
from different authors.</p>

<h2>GEORGE GRUENWALD, A. D. <i>1530</i></h2> 

<p>In the year <i>1530,</i> Brother George Gruenwald, a
shoemaker, and minister of the Word of God, and of His flock,
wag apprehended for the divine truth, at Kufstein, on the Inn,
condemned to death, and burned. Thus he valiantly testified
with his blood, that which he had confessed and taught with his
mouth, and confessed Christ, yea, His divine truth, before men,
forsaking this earthly and perishable</p>

</div><div id="440"> 

<p>praise, that Christ at His day should confess him before His
heavenly Father, and, moreover, give him immortal life in the
eternal- glory of heaven. Matt. 25:46.</p>

<h2>BROTHER ALDA, A. D. 1530</h2> 

<p>A few days after the execution of the above person, Brother
Alda was also executed for the faith, at Kufstein.</p>

<h2>GEORGE STEINMETZ, A. D. 1530</h2> 

<p>This George Steinmetz was apprehended and beheaded for the
testimony of Jesus Christ, at Portzen, in Germany, A. D. 1530.
He left the following admonition for consolation in suffering,
to all believers, "We sincerely thank Thee, O God, .for Thy fatherly
faithfulness. No one ought to mock at or despise His grace,
lest at last, when his departure is at hand, he regret it. O
Lord, help and assist us, through Jesus Christ. God has called
many to His eternal light, whom He also visits with suffering
and pain, as we see in this earth; ,for it seems that here we
must be refined by the fire of affliction, since we must all
enter through much tribulation into the kingdom of God, and be
purified from all sin and vice (I Peter 1:7; Acts 14</p>

<p>22); .for he that herein follows Christ, walks in the true
path. Christ says: I am the .Way and the Door, the Truth and
the Life; enter in by me; before me there is yet a hedge; the
cross, which each who would come to the Father must carry,
stands in the way. John 10:9. And according to my experience, I
must state the ti:uth, that the cross appears much heavier than
it really is; which deters many a one, as though he 'should not
be able to bear it, and hence would pass it by, and seek
another way. But we cannot come to God unless we bear the yoke
of Christ. Matt. 11:29. For he that.:would enter in by any
other way into the sheep fold, than through this door, the same
is a thief and a murderer (John 10:1), and shall have to suffer
the vengeance of God-everlasting. pain. Christ would have such
disciples as bear the cross after Him, follow Him in all His
ways, as I hope to show, and carry his .yoke unto the end.
Matt.:16:24. But he that will not bear his cross, but allows
himself to be moved and hindered by Satan, inay take heed that
Christ says, "Whosoever therefore shall confess me before men,
him will I confess also before my Father which is in heaven.
But whosoever shall deny me before men, him will I also deny
before my Father which is in heaven." Matthew 10:32, 33. O God,
sustain us to Thy praise and honor, that love may not wax cold
in us. Matthew 24:12. To this end give us strength, wisdom and
understanding, through Thy holy spirit, who can guide us into
all truth (John 16:13) , that we may never despond, but keep
good courage, and remain steadfast and proceed straight on in
the narrow way, and at the risk of body-life; goon through
Christ to the Father. John 14:6. Praised be the Lord our God,
who has called us to be His servants and children. Him we will
constantly praise forever and ever, because we may wash our
robes in the blood of the Lamb (Rev. 7:14), and afterwards,
from this brief death and suffering, go into everlasting joy
with Him. With this mind this witness of Jesus Christ was
beheaded and died at Portzen, as stated above.</p>

<h2>MARTIN THE PAINTER; WOLFGANG ESLINGER, PAIN,<br />
MELCHIOR, AND THREE OTHERS, A. D. 1531</h2> 

<p>In this year, Martin the painter, a minister of the Word of
God, and six others from the Swabian church, were apprehended
for the faith and the divine .truth. After long proceedings,
they were promised, that if they would renounce, tl~ey might go
home unmolested to their wives andi children. But they answered
frankly, "No," but that they would willingly die, and not
renounce. Afterwards, having been imprisoned almost a year, all
seven were sentenced to death. They were led under the town
hall, and several articles of their doctrine were read to them.
When the first article was read Brother Wolfgang Eslinger
said, "As you judge today so shall God judge you when you come
before His face; God shall well know you." Matt. 7:23.</p>

<p>When the third article was read, Brother Pain said, "You
stain your hands with our blood (Jer. 7:6); God shall certainly
not remit it to you, but require it at your. hands."</p>

<p>When the fourth article was read, Brother Melchior
said, "Today we will testify with our blood, that that wherein
we stand is the truth."</p>

<p>When the fifth article was read, Brother Walfgang Eslinger
said, "Forsake your sins and unrighteousness, and repent, and
God shall never remember it to you." Jer. 26:13. All seven were
then led under a guard, to the place of execution. There
Brother Martin, and all the others commended themselves unto
God their Lord, praying that .He would grant them a happy end,
and care for,. His sheep. When they were brought to the
field,:the miller's servant, who was about sixteen years old,
said to the people present, that they should forsake their
sins, and turn to God, since there was no other way to heaven,
than through our Lord Jesus Christ, who died on the cross, and
redeemed us. Ps. 34:14; Isa. 45:24; John 14:6; Matt. 27:50.
When they were brought into the ring, a nobleman rode up to
said servant, admonished and entreated him, saying, "My son,
desist from, your error, and renounce it. Why do you allow
yourself to be thus persuaded? spare your young life. I will
take you home with me, and always keep you; you shall enjoy
good things with me all your life, if you obey me." But the
servant said., "God forbid that this should ever come to pass;
if I should keep thistemporal life (Jno. 12: 25), and lose the
eternal, I would act foolishly. I</p>

</div><div id="441"> 

<p>will not do it; your wealth can help neither you nor me; I
expect one that is far better, if I persevere to the end. Matt.
10:22. I will surrender my spirit to God, and commend it to
Christ (Luke 23:46), that His bitter suffering, which He
endured on the cross, may in my case not be in vain." This
servant was inspired by God in his purpose; for though he was
younger in years than his brethren, they were nevertheless, as
far as the purpose is concerned, of like age. Thus all seven
valiantly and joyfully confessed God and His truth, even unto
death and the shedding of their blood. The above-mentioned
Martin, when he was led out over the bridge, said, "This once yet the pious are led over this bridge, but no
more hereafter." This came true; for a short time afterwards,
such a violent storm and flood came that the bridge was
demolished and carried away.</p>

<p>WALTER MAIR, AND TWO OTHERS, A. D. 1531</p>

<p>In the year 1531, Walter Mair, a cooper by trade, and
minister of the Word of God, was apprehended with two others,
at Walsburg, in Kaernthen, and executed with the sword; and
thus they steadfastly testified in death, to the truth, and
gave their lives for the covenant of God, and for His holy
Word; therefore their names shall also be found in the book of
life, and the second death shall have no power over them. Phil.
4:3; Rev. 20:6.</p>

<h2>GEORGE ZAUNRINGERAD, A. D. 1531</h2> 

<p>In the year 1531, Brother George Zaunringerad, a minister of
the Word of God, who, through the help of Jacob Huter, had been
placed in the ministry of the Word of God, in the earldom of
Tyrol, was sent by Jacob, with others, hither to the church in
Moravia. Subsequently he, because of his office and ministry,
was kept in Franconia, where he was executed with the sword,
not far from Bamberg, for the divine truth; thus testifying
with his blood to his faith and doctrine, from which he would
in no wise depart, and suffering with Christ, in order that
through His grace he might also be made an heir of glory with
Him in the eternal kingdom. I Cor. 1:5.</p>

<h2>VEIT PELGRIMS, AT GLABBECK, A. D. 1532</h2> 

<p>There must by no means be omitted here the manly and
divinely confirmed steadfastness of Veit Pelgrims, a German
brother; who regarded nothing so much as he did the salvation
of his soul. Notwithstanding the cruelty of those who follow
the footsteps of Cain, in shedding innocent blood, he freely
confessed the Gospel, and ordered his actions and conversation
in accordance with it, in all uprightness and simplicity. But
as the world, through his holy life, was reproved of its
wickedness it could not endure it; hence he was apprehended in
thewinter of A. D. 1532, at Glabbeck, in the Duchy of Juelich.
He was ready to testify with suffering to his doctrine and
life; however through the aid of his friends and relatives he
was released from prison for this time. But as nevertheless
undauntedly walked, in holiness and godliness, in the same
heavenly way, he again fell into the hands of the bloodthirsty,
and had to suffer much from the wicked; on the one hand, the
priests and monks, by much crafty examining, and through wiles
and strategies, sought, though in vain, to cause him to
apostatize; on the other hand, they endeavored to deter him by
severe tortures; but overcoming all these vexations and
tortures, he valiantly confirmed the truth, and showed that
above all temporal and visible things, he had in view something
higher, that is, the eternal and heavenly riches; hence,
regarding not his own life, and esteeming it blessedness to
suffer for the name of Christ, he said with remarkable
frankness, he hoped that the sheep was now ready and fat for
the slaughter. The bloodthirsty, seeing they could in no wise
prevail upon this unconquerable hero and soldier of Christ,
resorted to the most extreme means which cruelty could invent.
They brought it about that sentence of death was passed upon
him. The hour having come for him to offer up his sacrifice,
they (O inhuman tyranny I) opened his left side, and poured in
boiling oil. Having then been contemptuously laid upon a sled,
he was brought to the place of execution, where he commended
his soul to God and was burned to ashes.</p>

<h2>LAMBRECHT GRUBER, HANS BECK, LAURENCE SCHUMACHER, PETER PLAVER, HIS SERVANT PETER, 
AND HANS TALLER, A. D. 1532</h2> 

<p>In this year six brethren, named Lambrecht Gruber, Hans
Beck, Laurence Schumacher, Peter Plaver, his servant Peter, and
Hans Taller, were apprehended for the divine truth, at
Stertzing, in Etschland, and greatly tortured and racked, in
order to compel them to apostatize; but they valiantly and
firmly persevered in that which God had given them, and which
they had promised God in Christian baptism. They were then
sentenced to death and executed; all six valiantly testifying
with their blood to the truth of God, and greatly rejoicing
(Acts 5:41) over the day of their departure from this world,
because of the suffering and pain in the abominable wickedness
of the world, which they had to endure for a long time, also
because of the awful blasphemy and contempt of God (which
causes pain to all lovers of God), which they had to hear
during their imprisonment. They took leave from us, and
admonished us not to be dull or heedless in hearing and
retaining the Word of God, nor in prayer and the worship of
God; for if one comes to such places, it is necessary for him
to have done so, and he regrets it if he has spent an hour
unprofitably.</p>

</div><div id="442"> 

<h2>CONRAD FEICHTER, AND SEVERAL OTHERS,<br />
A. D. 1532</h2> 

<p>In this year, also Conrad Feichter was apprehended for the
faith, at Stertzing, and much pain was inflicted upon him. He
was so racked and stretched that the ungodly executioners and
children of Pilate themselves thought that he could not endure
it, but would be torn asunder. There were also some imprisoned
with him, who were much tempted by a multitude of priests and
others, by perversion of the Scriptures, with knavery,
craftiness, deceit and delusion, in order to subdue them; it
was. also tried to gain them by promising to leave them in
possession of home, wife, children, and life, but as they could
by no means turn them from the truth, they sentenced and
forthwith executed them; and thus they steadfastly attested the
truth with their blood.</p>

<h2>HUGO JACOB KR2EN, AND HIS WIFE MARY, WITH<br />
TWO OTHERS, A. D. 1532</h2> 

<p>When the Word of Gad, through the grace of the Lord, came
again to the light, and was accepted with great desire by many,
and attested and confirmed by the life and death of a great
number, said Word of God was also received and accepted (Acts
8:14; 17:11) by one Hugo Jacob Kraen of Assersouw, his wife
Mary, and two others, whose names we have not learned. And as
it was foretold by Paul, that"all that will live godly in
Christ Jesus shall suffer persecution" (II Tim. 3:12); and by
Isaiah that, "He that departeth from evil maketh himself a prey"
(Isa. 59:15); so it was also seen in the case of these persons;
for as soon as they renounced this dark world (Eph. 6:12; I
John 1:5), with its carnal walk, and false, invented worship,
and sought and followed the eternal light and glory of Christ
Jesus (Matt. 19:28), they were hated, and persecuted unto
death, by the children of darkness and Belial. John 15:18, 19.
Finally Mary, the wife of Hugo Jacob, was apprehended at
Haarlem, and after. suffering many trials, was drowned at said
place, in the year A. D. 1532, enduring it with great
steadfastness; thus confirming with her death the accepted
truth. Rev. 2:10. But Hugo Jacob Kraen, with two of his fellow
believers, were brought prisoners into Gravenhage, where they
had to suffer much for the truth. But as they were founded upon
a rock (Matt. 16:18), they could, by no torments, be brought to
apostatize. Therefore the servants of antichrist condemned them
to die, and this, such a terrible death, that all who saw it
must justly have pitied them! for, in the year 1532, at said
place, they were chained to stakes, a great fire built around
them, and in this manner they were roasted until they. expired.
And as they did not love their lives here, but obediently
surrendered them for the testimony of Jesus, and died
steadfastly: they, at the appearing of our Saviour Jesus
Christ, shall, for this mortal garmentof the flesh, be clothed
with the immortal, and be rewarded by God with the crown of
everlasting glory. Rev. 12:17; 2:13; II Tim. 1:8; Acts 22:18;
23:11; II Thess. 1:7; Phil. 3:21; Wisd. 5:16; II Esd. 2:43; I
Cor. 9:25; I Pet. 5:4; James 1:12; Rev. 2:10.</p>

<h2>LUDWIG FEST, A. D. 1533</h2> 

<p>In the year 1533, Ludwig Fest, a steadfast witness of the
divine truth, was sentenced to death, and executed, at Schwatz,
in the valley of the Inn, for the testimony of Jesus Christ. He
admonished us not to be selfish. In the beginning of his
tribulation he besought us, by the mercies of God, that we
should not burden or grieve one another; for when one comes to
this trial, it will cause him pain; and it is no wonder that
then it should trouble him in his heart. He also desired that
we should have a good assurance concerning him, since he hoped,
with the help and power of his heavenly Father, to remain
faithful, which he also did. Rev. 2:10.</p>

<h2>CHRISTINA HARING, A. D. 1533</h2> 

<p>In the year 1533, a sister, named Christina Haring, was
apprehended, taken to Kitzbuehl, and there fastened to a chain;
she, however, remained steadfast in the faith. But as she was
with child, and was soon to be confined, they let her go home
until she should be delivered of her child; and though she knew
that she would be apprehended again, and might have escaped ten
times, or even more, she did not flee, but boldly remained.
When she saw the officer coming, she went out to meet him, and
asked him what he desired. He said, "I have come to take you away again;" and thus they again
took her to the town of Kitzbuehl, where shortly afterwards she
was executed with the sword (which is not usually done with a
woman), for the faith, to which she steadfastly adhered. Her
body was afterwards burnt. Matt. 24:13. This courageous, heroic
woman or sister in Christ, who forsook her husband, infant,
house and home, and all temporal things, strengthened her
womanly heart with such valiant manliness, and by the grace of
God so armed herself in the faith, that she paid her vow unto
the Lord, and joyfully went to meet Christ her bridegroom, with
her lamp burning, and her light shining so that many were
filled with astonishment. Matt. 25:1.</p>

<h2>SICKE SNYDER, A. D. 1533</h2> 

<p>About the year 1533 there was another pious hero and
follower of Jesus, named Sicke Snyder, who, according to the
counsel of the Holy Ghost, separated from the Babylonian whore,
and all her false, self-invented, imaginary worship, which was
all contrary to God, and accepted Christ Jesus; seeking to
follow the unblamable footsteps of this true Lawgiver (James
4:12), and to hear only His</p>

</div><div id="443"> 

<p>voice as contained in the holy Scriptures: John 10:4.
Therefore he obediently submitted to the example and ordinance
of Christ, and in accordance with the doctrines of His Word
received Christian baptism upon his faith, as the sign of a
regenerated child of God, seeking thus to live and walk in
obedience toward his Creator. For this reasbn:he was put into
bonds and in prison at Leeuwaerden, in Friesland, and had to
suffer much from the enemies of the truth. I Tim. 6:20. And as
he could by no tortures be induced to apostatize, he was
executed with the sword at said place, enduring it with great
steadfastness; thus attesting and confirming the true faith
with his death and blood.. Rev: 2:13; 20:4. Hence he shall, as
a good soldier of Jesus Christ, together with all true
conquerors, be clothed in white, shining raiment, and inherit
the blessing. II Tim. 2:3; Rev. 3:5; I Pet. 3:9.</p>

<p>Concerning this account see, besides this, <i>Menno Simon
contra Gellius Faber, fol.</i> 98.*.</p>

<h2>WILLIAM WIGGERS OF BARSINGHORN, IN NORTH<br />
HOLLAND, A. D. 1534</h2> 

<p>About the year 1534, a God-fearing pious brother, named
William Wiggers, residing at Barsinghorn, a village in North
Holland, hear. Sehagen, was brought thence to the castle at
Schagen, for the true faith and the practice of it. In that
place he was imprisoned for about eight days, and was then
beheaded with the sword, at early dawn, in the gate of said
castle, for the testimony of Jesus Christ, enduring it with
great steadfastness. And as he was a Godfearing and an
agreeable man, he was often employed by the lord of Schagen to
transact his temporal business. Hence it came that when the
servants of Schagen came to his house, for the purpose of
apprehending him, he supposed they had come for former
friendship and acquaintance' sake; hence he sent his wife to
get some viands with which to treat these servants; but before
she returned, the dean with his servants, sent by the Roman
antichrist, came and took this defenseless sheep of Christ with
them to Schagen, notwithstanding the bailiff of Barsinghorn
offered himself as security for the prisoner. Wigger
Hendericks, father of the before-mentioned William Wiggers, who
was also secular magistrate, having seen, that his God-fearing
son had, without right and reason, been thus secretly murdered
with the sword, instantly forsook his office, and would no
longer administer the secular power.</p>

 
<h1>OF THE EDICT ISSUED BY EMPEROR CHARLES V AGAINST THE ANABAPTISTS, A. D. 1535</h1>

<p><i>By the Emperor: To</i> our beloved and faithful
commanders-in-chief, the president and members. of our
Privy-Council, the Chancellor and members of our council in
Braband, the Governor and Councilors</p>

<br /><cite>* See also Menno Simons' Works, Holland Edition
of 1646, page 471. Also Complete Works of Menno Simons, English
Edition of 1871, page 3.</cite> 

<p>in Limburg, the President and Councilors in Flanders,
the Governor, President and Councilors in Artois, the chief
Bailiff in Hainault, the Councilors of Bergen, the Lieutenant,
President and Councilors of Holland, Namur, Friesland, and
Utrecht, to the Lieutenant of Over-Yssel, the Governor of
Rijssel, Douay and Orchies, the Bailiff and:Councilors of
Doornick and Tournesis, the stewards of Bewest and
Beoosterschelde, in Zealand, the Provost of Valenciennes, the
Bailiff of Mechlin, and all other judgesand officers of our
territories, cities and seigniories, and of our subjects, or
their governors, to whom these presents shall come, happiness
and favor.</p>

<p>In order to guard against and remedy the errors which many
sectarians and authors of contempt, with their adherents, have
dared for some time to sow and spread in our territories,
against our holy Christian faith, sacraments, and the
commandments of.our mother the holy church, we have at
different times ordained, and caused to be executed and
proclaimed many decrees containing statutes, edicts and
ordinances, as also penalties to be incurred by transgressors,
so that by means thereof the common, simple.people, and others,
may beware of said errors and abuses, and that the chief
promulgators and sectarians may be punished and and corrected,
as an example unto others. And since it has come to our
knowledge, that notwithstanding our aforesaid decrees, many and
various sectarians, even some who call themselves Anabaptists,
have proceeded, and still daily proceed, to spread, sow, and
secretly preach their aforesaid abuses and errors, in order to
allure a, great number <i>of</i> men and women to their' false
doctrine and reprobate sect, to seduce them and to rebaptize
some, to the great reproach and disregard of the sacrament of
holy baptism,. and of our edicts, statutes and ordinances;
therefore we, intending to guard against and remedy this,
summon and command you, that, immediately upon receipt of this,
you cause it to be proclaimed within every place and border of
your dominions, that all those, or such as shall be found
,polluted by the accursed sect of the Anabaptist, of whatever
rank or condition they may be, their chief leaders, adherents,
and abettors, shall incur the loss of life and property, and be
brought to the most extreme punishment, without delay; namely,
those who remain obstinate and,continue in their evil belief
and purpose, or who have seduced to their sect and rebaptized
any; also those who have been called prophets,' apostles or
bishops -these shall be punished with fire. All other persons
who have been rebaptized, or who secretly and with
premeditation have harbored any of the'aforesaid Anabaptists,
and who renounce their evil purpose and belief, and are
truly.sorry and penitent for it, shall be executed with the
sword, and the women be buried in a pit.</p>

<p>And in order to better detect these Anabaptists, their
adherents and accomplices, we expressly command ail subjects,
to make known and report them</p>

</div><div id="444"> 

<p>to the officer of the place where they reside or shall be
found; and if any one shall know of persons' of this sect, and
do not report them to the officer of the place, he shall be
punished as a favorer, adherent, or abettor of the sect of the
Anabaptists; but he who shall report or make them known, shall
have, if the accused is convicted, one third of their
confiscated property.</p>

<p>Moreover, we prohibit all our subjects from asking for
mercy, forgiveness, or reconciliation for the aforesaid
Anabaptists, or from presenting any petitions for this purpose,
on pain of summary punishment; for because of their evil
doctrine, we will not have or permit that any Anabaptists shall
have any mercy shown them, but that they shall be punished, as
an example unto others, without any dissimulation, favor or
delay. And in order to do this with all that pertains to it, we
give each and all of you full power and special command.</p>

<p>Given at Brussels, under our counterseal, stamped here in
the margin, on the tenth .day of June, in the year 1535.
Subscribed by the Emperor and his council, and signed
<i>Pensart.</i></p>

<h2>PETER KOSTER, A. D. 1535</h2> 

<p>In the year 1535, there was a pious brother, named Peter
Koster, who had been sexton of the church at Sardam, in North
Holland. But having come to the knowledge of the truth; he was
ordained a teacher of the church, and because of the
persecution, went to reside at Amsterdam, where he was
apprehended by the bailiff, having been reported by a woman
living in his neighborhood, who through ill-directed zeal
revealed the place where he had concealed himself. And as this
took place at a time when some wicked rebellions and
conspiracies were taking. place in the world, this friend of
God was suspected of this matter; but it appeared from his own
writings, as well as in his confession, that he was innocent,
and various credible witnesses testify that he, had always
sincerely opposed these things. Nevertheless, as he had been
baptized upon faith, according to the command and ordinance of
Christ, and,.moreover, had been a teacher, he was sentenced to
death, and executed with the sword, at Amsterdam, and is now
awaiting, with all the pious, the reward which Christ has
promised, saying, "Blessed are ye, when men shall revile you,
and persecute you, and say all manner of evil against you
falsely, for my sake. Rejoice, and be exceeding glad: for great
is your reward in heaven." Matthew 5:11, 12.</p>

<h2>SYBRANT JANS, HENDRICK GIJSBRECHTS VAN CAMPEN, STEPHEN BENEDICTUS, FEMMETGEN, DAUGHTER OF EGBERT, AND WELMUT, DAUGHTER OF JANS</h2> 

<p>In the year 1535, three brethren and two sisters named
Sybrant Jans, Hendrick Gijsbrechts van Campen, Steven
Benedictus, Femnietgen, daughter of Egbert, and Welmut,
daughter of Jans, were apprehended at Hoorn, in West Friesland,
because they no longer sought to obey the Roman church; but the
commandments of God. When they were examined, they freely
confessed their faith, principally with regard to baptism. When
they were asked whether they had been rebaptized, they answered
in the affirmative, saying that they were not sorry for it;
that they had been baptized according to the ordinance of
Christ, to the remission or burying of their sins, and the
putting on of Christ, with the answer of a good conscience
towards God. Rom. 6:4; I Pet. 3:21. The rulers of darkness,
perceiving that they were not sorry for it, and intended
valiantly to adhere to their faith, sentenced them to death,
pursuant to the imperial edict, as the following sentence,
which they pronounced upon them clearly shows., "Whereas M. Anthony Sonck, Bailiff, has entered legal
complaint against Sybrant Jans, Hendrick Gijsbrechts van
Campen, Steven Benedictus; Femmetgen, daughter of Egbert, and
Welmut, daughter of Jans, that, contrary to the written laws,
and contrary to our Christian faith, and the edict of his
imperial Majesty our most gracious lord, they were rebaptized,
without having .repented of it, and without having obtained
remission therefor, therefore. we determine that each and all
of them have forfeited their lives and property, and that they
be executed, namely, the men with the sword, and their bodies
to be placed upon the wheel, and their heads upon stakes, and
the women drowned with a stone tied to their necks; and desire
that the judges pass sentence accordingly.", "My lords of the court, having heard the answer and defense
of the aforesaid defendants, by which, they openly, confess
that .they were rebaptized, without having obtained remission
therefor, deem it just, through .their sentence, that all the
aforesaid persons, according to. the edict of his imperial
Majesty, and the written laws, have forfeited their lives and
pro-perty, by virtue of the privileges of this city, and that
all are to die, namely, the men to be executed with the sword,
their bodies placed upon the wheel, and their heads upon
stakes, unless the lords are willing to show them mercy,
especially those who renounce and are penitent; and the women
to be drowned with a stone tied to their necks or bodies.
Passed in the presence of all the judges and three
burgomasters, the seventh of June, A. D. 1535."</p>

<p>This sentence having been given, they were led forth to
death; they went boldly to the place of execution; and among
other things said, "The servant is not greater than his master;
if they have done this in the green tree, what will they do in
the dry," and the like. Having come to the place prepared for
this purpose, they were beheaded. The two women were led to the
sea, where stones were tied to their necks, and they were cast
in, and drowned. Their bodies were ignominiously left to float
about'</p>

</div><div id="445"> 

<p>for a long time, until the rulers were moved to have them
taken out and buried.</p>

<p>Christian reader, here you can clearly see why and for what
reasons these people had to die; that what some blind zealots
of idolatrous popery say, falsely charge and say is not true,
namely, that no one was put to death because of his religion or
faith, but on account of their rebelliousness and crimes. But
how falsely and shamelessly they act herein, may be judged from
this single fact that the same year when these persons were put
to death, the siege of Munster took place, and that they were
not accused of, much less participated in, this wicked crime.
But herein they show the nature of the old Pharisees, who, when
they brought Christ to death, did not say, that it was on
account of His good doctrine that He had to die, but for His
blasphemy. This is the way of all tyrants, that, besides
inflicting suffering and death upon the innocent, they also
heap upon them false accusations. But when the day cometh that
shall come, they shall see whom they have pierced, and say with
astonishment, "Behold, these are they whom we had sometimes in
derision, and a proverb of .reproach: we fools accounted their
life madness, and their end to be without honor: how are they
numbered among the children of God, and their lot is among the
saints?" Wisd.5:3-5.</p>

<h2>ANDREW CLAESSEN OF DROURIJP, BEHEADED FOR<br />
THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, UNDER<br />
THE STADTHOLDER GEORGE SCHENCK,<br />
AT LEEUWAERDEN, A. D. 1535</h2> 

<p><i>(Copy of a certain old document)</i>, "It is a faithful saying, and worthy of all acceptation,"
which our Saviour spoke and left for our instruction,
saying, "Whosoever will save his, life shall lose it: but
whosoever will lose it for my- sake, or the gospel's, shall
save it" unto life eternal. Matt. 16:25; Luke 9:24.</p>

<p>This evangelical doctrine, given for admonition and
consolation, many faithful witnesses of Christ have taken to
heart, who voluntarily surrendered their lives for His holy
name's sake, looking to the promises, aryd the glorious reward
which shall be given them not in this, but in the future world;
for in the third chapter of Wisdom we read, "The souls of the
righteous are in the hand of God, and there shall no torment
touch them. In the sight of the unwise they seem to die: and
their departure is taken for misery, and their going from us to
be utter destruction: but they are in peace. For though they be
punished in the sight of men, yet is their hope full of
immortality, and having been a little chastised, they shall be
greatly rewarded: for God proved them, and found them worthy
for himself. As gold in the furnace hath he tried them, and
received them as a burnt offering." Verses 1-6.</p>

<p>This a glorious testimony, and well accords with the words
of the holy apostle Paul, that we must through much tribulation
enter into the kingdom ofheaven (Acts 14:22); as also our
Saviour says that the way is narrow, and the gate is strait,
that leadeth unto life; and that there are few who walk in it;
few, when compared to the great multitude and majority who
choose the broad way, and walk through the wide gate, to their
own destruction and eternal perdition.</p>

<p>Few were found at Sardis, who had not defiled their
garments; nevertheless these few were to be crowned as
conquerors, clothed in white raiment, and their names were not
to be blotted out of the book of life; and the Son of God shall
confess their names before His Father and His angels, which is
promised to all that overcome. Rev. 3:5. This was taken to
heart by those who did not look upon what is visible and
perishing, but upon the invisible, as appears in the pious
witnesses and martyrs of Christ, who, for Christ's sake, gladly
forsook not only all their property and the distinction which
they enjoyed in this world, but also their own lives; for
neither persecution, nor any creature in the world could deter
them from the love of God and Christ. Rom. 8:39.</p>

<p>Among others, it was seen also in the case of a manful hero
and armed soldier of Christ, named Andrew Claessen of Drourijp,
a village in Friesland, situated between Leeuwaerden and
Franneker; who, A. D. 1535, under the Stadtholder George
Schenck, was apprehended, brought to Leeuwaerden, beheaded on
the sixteenth of March, and placed upon a wheel. This took
place three days after his imprisonment; however, the pious
secretly took him down and buried him; and his soul is now also
resting under the altar of God.</p>

<h2>FURTHER OBSERVATION</h2> 

<p>He had seven children, who after the death of their father
had to wander about in poverty and misery, yet were supported
by some kindly disposed persons, though not without peril.
These things we have recorded from the testimony of their
descendants, who, to this end, have sent us their written
attestations, from the town of Franneker, in Friesland, dated
March the 13th, 1658, and subscribed,</p>

<p class="c8">JOUKE WYBES.</p>

<h2>SEVEN BRETHREN, A. D. 1536</h2> 

<p>In this year, also seven brethren, namely, Hans Beck,
Wolfert Schneider, Christian Alzeiter, Balthasar Gesel, Wolfert
from Getzenberg, Hans Maurer, and Peter Kranewitter, from
Gofedaum in Etschland, were apprehended. Various things were
resorted to with them, in order to conquer them, and to draw
them away; but as they could not be prevailed upon, but adhered
to their faith and to the truth, they were sentenced to death
by the children of Pilate, who, through the advice of the high
priest, delivered them to the executioner, who had to bring the
matter to a close. Thus they were put to death., mightily
admonishing the peo-</p>

</div><div id="446"> 

<p>ple to repent, and that this was the divine truth, showing
that no impure, false, idle, or heedless hearts can stand the
test. Wolfert had once apostatized, and consented to the will
of the wicked; but afterwards deplored and bewailed his course.
When after a few days he was again called before the judge, he
again confessed the Lord, and said that the devil had deceived
him in what he had done against God. He was then put back into
the tower to the others, and with them steadfastly suffered
death, and in this manner they together testified with their
blood to the truth, at Gofedaum.</p>

<h2>PETER GERRITS, PETER JORIS, PETER LEYDECKER,<br />
AND JOHANNA MELS, A. D. 1536</h2> 

<p>In the year 1536, on St. Margaret's day, in the morning, the
Bailiff at Zierichzee apprehended three brethren and one
sister, named Peter Gerrits, Peter Joris, Peter Leydecker, and
Johanna Mels, whom he took with him half dressed, and put them
in prison, where they were confined for seven weeks; but no
suffering or misery inflicted upon them could induce them to
apostatize. When they were examined, and many human
institutions were presented to them, which they endeavored to
refute with the Word of God, the Burgomaster said, "We care not for your Word of God, but hold to the mandate
of the Emperor, and shall ignominiously exterminate all those
who act contrary to it."</p>

<p>They answered, "Lord Burgomaster, by this you prove yourself
to be a protector of the kingdom of Babel and of Bel for which
you will indeed reap some reward here on earth, but hereafter,
with antichrist and the crowned beast, eternal damnation in the
lake of fire." I John 2:18; Revelation 13; 19:20.</p>

<p>They were then placed upon the rack, though contrary to
their privileges, for they were mere citizens; however, they
would not apostatize, though they were tortured so that the
blood ran down their feet: but they trusted in and cried to God
alone. After being tortured, they were brought up above again,
where they comforted each other with the Word of God. I Thess.
4:18.</p>

<p>Finally, on the 4th of September, they were sentenced to
death. They were brought bound upon the scaffold, yet came
forth boldly and humbly, as lambs of Christ, and finally knelt
down, saying with Stephen, "Lord Jesus, receive our spirits into
Thy hands." Acts 7:59. They were all then speedily beheaded,
their bodies burned, and their heads placed upon stakes. Thus
they offered up their sacrifice.</p>

<h2>JEROME KELS, MICHAEL SEIFENSIEDER, AND HANS<br />
ODERACKER, A. D. 1536</h2> 

<p>In the beginning of the year 1536, Jerome Kels of Kufestein,
Michael Seifensieder of Wald in Bohemia, and Hans Oberacker
from Etschland weredispatched to go into the Earldom of Tyrol.
Acts 13:2. But when they arrived at Vienna, in Austria, they
were apprehended, having been betrayed by the host with whom
they had lodged. Acts 4:3; 5:26. While they were eating supper,
the people tried to ascertain their character by drinking to
their health; but when they perceived that they would not
respond, the host had some paper brought, and wrote a letter in
Latin, which, among other things, read as follows, "Here are
three persons who appear to me to be Anabaptists." But he did
not know that Brother Jerome understood Latin. Then said Jerome
to the other brethren, they would watch together, let things go
as the dear Lord should please. Two hours afterwards the
constables came and brought them bound before the judge, and
when they had been examined they were put in prison.</p>

<p>Eight days afterwards the judge had them brought before him
and his assessors, where they were told to recant. Brother
Jerome said that they themselves should forsake their unbelief,
and not so falsely bear the name of God, or of Christ.
Thereupon the judge became highly incensed at Jerome, and when
the latter said they were no Christians, the judge said, "You
are a desperately wicked fellow." And though he was asked this
as much as ten times, he constantly confessed as before. The
assessors then said, "This reprobate fellow is not worthy that
your wisdom should become enraged at him." They were then led
back into prison, and the judges were highly offended at Jerome
and his brethren. After another eight days the judge again
summoned all three before him, taking to him three of the most
wicked priests. When these would speak with Jerome, contemned
our calling, reviled our faith, and said that they were sent to
instruct them regarding their error, Jerome boldly and
fearlessly said, "We are in the right way: our calling is from
God, and Christ has taught us that we should not hear a
stranger's voice." John 10:5. He also said, "We are willing to
give an answer to every man, and to show the ground of our
hope; but with monks and priests, who are sent by the pope, who
is the antichrist, we do not desire to speak, for they are
great rogues, whoremongers, perjurers, deceivers and seducers,
even as these."</p>

<p>Thereupon the judge said, "My good Jerome, you do not yet
know these good lords." Jerome said, "God is my Lord, but not
they." Matthew 11:25; Luke 10:21. He then, for almost two hours
and a quarter gave answer concerning the mass, original sin,
infant baptism, calling, and their awful, idolatrous sacrament.
Then followed many entreaties that he should regard his dear
life, wife and child, and take to heart their sincere promise;
and that he should pray to God; they would also. But he said
that they had the truth and would adhere to it, they might do
what they pleased, and as they could also not overcome the
other brethren with their poison, the judge remanded them
to</p>

</div><div id="447"> 

<p>prison, in which they sang comforting hymns together, and
rejoiced in God. And as, they could hear each other, they,
called to one aother, comforting and strengthening one another.
They also delivered their written confession of faith, with
full proof from the holy Scriptures, to the lords at Vienna,
and to the judge.</p>

<p>To the aforesaid 'brother Hans Oberacher the day of the Lord
appeared three times, as he informed us from prison, and he
'saw unutterable things, with the eyes of the spirit, as also
with his bodilyeyes; he saw the condition of the children of
God, and how great grace they received from God ,' on the
other' hand, how mighty and terrible this day is for the
wicked; so that he prayed that God would never let him incur
this wrath, which is so great and dreadful upon wickedness.
Mal. 3:17; 4,:1, 2.</p>

<p>Many attempts having been made to,prevail upon these
brethren, and they remaining steadfast in the faith, as strong
soldiers, and lovers of God, they were condemned to death by
the children of Pilate, and burned to ashes, at Vienna, on the
Friday preceding iudica, in I:xnt of the aforesaid year.</p>

<h2>GEORGE VASER, AND LEONHARD SAILER,<br />
A. D. 1536</h2> 

<p>In this year, George Vaser, a minister of the Lord and His
church, and Brother Leonhard Sailer, his companion, were
apprehended at Neudorf, in Austria, where they were passing
through, and were put in the stocks there. The next day, the
Judge of Metling, and the whole council, as also other people
with them, came and asked him on what account they we're
imprisoned there. They replied, "For the faith of Christ, and
the divine trpth."</p>

<p>They then took them, and brought them into the market town
of Metling, a distance of several furlongs from Neudorf, and
two leagues from Vienna. On the whole way they testified with
great boldness to the truth, and with many words declared'to
them the judgment of God, so that the judge and all the ,others
were amazed and dared not say a single word against it.
Thereupon they put them all into, the common prison, in which
they met with ail manner of ungodly and shameful impropriety on
the part of their fellow prisoners, which daily caused them
great sorrow of heart, so that they would rather have been cast
into an offensive dungeon where they would not have beers
obliged to listen to this impiety. .</p>

<p>During their imprisonment they were much questioned with
regard to infant baptism, the sacrament, and that we call them
all ungodly and unbelieving; but' they told them, that, as
regards infant baptism, they were entirely welcome to it, and
also said, "Because they called themselves Christians; but
falsely bore the name of Christ, and did not'move with a finger
the least of Christ's commandments; therefore they should know
that they were of the devil (John 8:44); and if theywould not
repent of their sins, God would destroy their false boast, so
that they, with the whole world, and the rich man would be cast
into the abyss of hell, which would certainly come to pass,
though they now did not believe it. Having been in prison
nearly a whole year, and being fully prepared for death; yea,
of good courage and cheer, and joyful in the Lord, they prayed
that the Lord, the gracious God, would deliver them from this
mortal tabernacle, and this wicked, blind world; for they had a
good hope and great joy and a sincere desire to depart, and
expected every hour, to die manfully and boldly, through the
help and power of God, for the divine truth, and for the name
of our Lord Jesus Christ, notwithstanding all the pain and
suffering, which might be inflicted upon them.</p>

<p>However, through a special providence of God, they were
wonderfully liberated, unharmed in their consciences, and came
in peace to the church at Trasenhofen, and were joyfully
received in the spirit, as good, worthy and beloved
brethren.</p>

<h2>FURTHER ACCOUNT OF GEORGE VASER,<br />
A. D. 1537</h2> 

<p>In the following year, at the request of some of the
zealous, the above-mentioned George Vaser, was sent to
Pechstall, in Austria, where he gladly began to teach the Word
of the Lord, notwithstanding he had just come out of the prison
at Metling. He gathered the believers, and established a
church, according to the command of God. But he could not
escape a certain deceiver, a genuine tool of all treachery,
who, under a false appearance, pretended to learn the grounds
of the truth of him as a minister, but, in the meantime
appointed many servants, commanding them at a suitable time to
apprehend this George Vaser, which they faithfully did..</p>

<p>He was then subjected to much cruel torturing, and while in
prison was tempted in manifold ways</p>

<p>but he remained very steadfast and faithfully followed unto
death Him whom he had proclaimed in the faith; thus testifying
with his blood (being executed with the sword), to the faith
and the truth of God. Matt. 24:13; John 10:4; I Peter 5,:l.</p>

<h2>SEBASTIAN GLASMACHER, AND HANS GRUENFEL<br />
DER, A. D. 1537</h2> 

<p>In the year 1537, also Sebastian Glasmacher and Hans
Gruenfelder were apprehended for the faith and divine truth, at
Imst. in the upper valley of the Inn. They were executed with
the sword, and then burned. They confessed the Lord and His
holy Word and truth with great gladness. A countless multitude
were present at their execution. Hans called and spoke with a
very loud voice, admonishing and warning the people, to the
best of his ability; so also did Sebastian, and-in this they
continued, until their death. This greatly astonished the
people.</p>

<p>!! Their bones however could not be wholly</p>

</div><div id="448"> 

<p>burned; hence they were afterwards thrown into the water.
The heart also of the one could not be burned, which was no
doubt for a remarkable testimony. John 15:27, .</p>

<h2>HANS PEIZ, AND SOME ,OTHERS; A. D. 1537</h2> 

<p>In this year 1537, also Hans Peiz, a minister of the Gospel,
and several of. his fellow believers were apprehended for the
divine truth, at Passau; on the Danube. They were imprisoned
along time, suffered much, and, together with others, who
confessed their faith and the truth, fell asleep in prison,
after great steadfastness; and heroic piety.</p>

<h2>HANS WUCHERER, AND HANS BARTEL, A. D. 1537</h2> 

<p>In this same year 1537,Brother Hans Wucherer was apprehended
in Bavaria, and with him another brother, named Hans Bar tel, a
weaver. They were taken to Mermes, Where they were confined for
sixteen days, and were twice examined by Caiphas and the
priests, and twice. through the torture. They were asked what
they believed concerning the sacrament. They spoke mightily
against it, that it was an abomination, and an idol before the
Lord; and that it was not to be believed, that they 'could give
the body of Christ, with flesh and blood, just as He hung on
the cross to eat so many hundred thousand times; but they said
that the supper was a memorial of His suffering, death and the
shedding of His blood, by which fie redeemed us, Matt. 26: 25;
Luke 22:19. T o commemorate this; and to search their hearts,
is the purpose for which believers, who are members of His
body, or His church, are to observe it, with sincere
thanksgiving to Him. They then asked them concerning infant
baptism and what they held of their priests and churches. They
spoke against all these according to the truth. They then
questioned them about their viewsregarding their matrimony, and
the Ten Commandments. To this they also gave their reply. They
were then brought bound to Bruckenhausen, where each was
separately put in chains in prison.' Six times they were
brought forth and examined, in order to induce them to'recant,
which if they would do, mercy would be shown them. But they
would in no wise exchange the divine grace for the favor of the
world, since they felt assured that they were in the true faith
and in the truth of God.</p>

<p>The seventh time .the priests came to them into the prison;
but they adhered constantly to God. They also greatly tortured
them, severely racking Hans, and Brother Bartel twice, without,
however, prevailing upon them. '</p>

<p>The eighth time the judge came to them, together with three
others: After maltreating them fearfully, he sentenced them to'
be burned; but they .hoped in the Lprd, to'rcmairi faithful and
steadfast unto the end, in the divine truth, through the
unspeakable riches and power of God. They were then burned for
the faith, valiantly testified to the truth, and obtained the
crown of the martyrs of Christ.</p>

<h2>PHILIP DE KEURS, A. D. 1537</h2> 

<p>In the year 1537, there was at Cassel, in Flanders, a
God-fearing pious brother, whose name was Philip Keurs, a
joiner by trade. And since he had also separated from this
present wicked world, and had entered upon the peculiar way of
the cross, which leads to the kingdom of God, he, like his Lord
and Master, Jesus, was hated, despised and persecuted by the
servants of this world, so that he finally, fell into the hands
of tyrants, who cruelly maltreated him with severe
imprisonment. But as he was not founded upon drifting sand, but
upon the immovable Rock (Matt. 7:24, 26; 16:18), he remained
steadfast in every respect, as gold which is tried in the fire.
I Pet. 1:7. And since nothing could move him to swerve from the
truth, he was sentenced to death at said place; in this manner
confirming the faith of the truth with his death and blood. And
as he here became a partaker of the sufferings of his Lord and
Master Christ Jesus, so he shall also, when His glory shall be
revealed, receive and enjoy great gladness and joy, and in
eternity the crown of everlasting ,glory. II Tim. 4:8.</p>

<h2>TWELVE PERSONS, MEN AND WOMEN, BURNED AND
BEHEADED FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS
CHRIST, AT VUCHT, NEAR HERZOGENBUSCH, A. D. 1538</h2> 

<p><i>(Copied from certain very old testimonies)</i></p>

<p>In the year 1538, in August, there were apprehended' in the
town ten or seventeen men and women, who were said to have been
rebaptized, all of them humble (or poor) people, etc., except a
goldsmith, who was among the number, whose name was Paul
Vandruynen, and who was said to be their teacher.*</p>

<p>This Paul, together with three other men, was strangled
alive and burned, upon a scaffold at Vucht, on the ninth of
September.</p>

<p>The other three were named: Michael Stevens of Oosterhont, a
potter; John Block of Ghent, a tapemaker; and Adrain of
Gravenhage, also a tapemaker.</p>

<p>A rope was tied into the mouth of each that they should not
speak or cry aloud.</p>

<p>Two 117inorites and two Dominicans were also present, who
wanted to say much to them, and show them a crucifix; but they
would not look at it, saying that they had God in their hearts,
and, therefore, would worship neither wood nor stone; they also
prayed for those who put them to death, and said that the
servant was not better than his master, and that they did
willingly die in His name, but would not listen to the
monks.</p>

<p>The trial was conducted by a commissary from the court,
named Sir. Adrian van de Grave a licentiate in both laws. He
had with him a man of the aforesaid sect, whose misdeed had
been remitted to</p>

<br /><cite>*"Bishop" says the writer.</cite> 

</div><div id="449"> 

<p>him (probably an apostate), who pointed out their
residences.</p>

<p>To said commissary seven judges were added, who together
sentenced them; namely: Sir Goosen van der Stege, Gisbert Heyn,
and Matthew Stooters, in the ring.</p>

<p>The four other judges were: Hendrick Pelgrim, <i>alias</i>
Ketelaer; Sir Hendrick Luysterisan van der Stege,
Heyligengoestmeister, and Govert Symons, jailer.</p>

<p>On the eleventh of September, at the afore-said place, three
women and one man were strangled, who were said to be
rebaptized; one of whom was the wife of Paul, the teacher, here
also monks were present, to induce them to renounce.</p>

<p>Paul's wife said, "O Lord, enlighten the eyes of those who
inflict this suffering upon us, that they may see what they are
doing. I thank Thee, O God, that Thou countest me worthy to
suffer for Thy name's sake."</p>

<p>The Dominican said to another woman, "Will you not adhere to
the holy church?"</p>

<p>She said, "I adhere to God; is this not holy church enough
for me?"</p>

<p>The Dominican then said to the man, John van Capelle, "Ask
God to forgive you for having set a bad example unto us."</p>

<p>He answered, "I did not err, but dealt with the Word of God,
and am sorry that I have been so long in darkness. I entreat
you, citizens, read the Gospel, and live according to it;
forsake your drunkenness, knavery, cursing and crossing
yourselves," etc.</p>

<p>The third woman said, "O God Almighty, do not lay upon me
more than I can bear," etc. Thus they gladly died.</p>

<p>The aforesaid Paul and his wife had an infant of nine
months, which was still unbaptized; this they took from the
mother in prison and baptized it. Lord Philip van Doorn, dean
of St. John, Postulia, wife of Sir John van der Stegen, and
Anna, wife of Sir Goosen van der Stegen acted as sponsors to
said child.</p>

<p>All of them were then put to death, and on the fourteenth of
September, at six o'clock in the morning, a young man of the
above named sect was also beheaded.</p>

<p>Thus far the old document sent to us from Friesland.
Compared with the account in the <i>History van den Opgang
van's Hertogenbosch, by Borre van Uytrecht,</i> concerning the
persons who were brought thither as prisoners.</p>

<p>NOTE.-It appears that the entire above account was written
by some one who had not yet come to the faith; since he calls
the true faith of said persons who were put to death <i>a
sect;</i> of whose death he seems to have been an eye witness;
hence we can assume this with the greater confidence, since it
is certain that the opponent of a belief will not embellish,
but much rather speak against it.</p>

 
<h1>LEONHARD LOCHMAIR, AND OFFRUS GREIZINGER,
A. D. 1538</h1>

<p>In the year 1538, Brother Leonhard Lochmair, a minister of
the Word, in the Earldom of Tyrol, was apprehended, and taken
to Brixen, where a great number of priests practiced all manner
of craftiness with him, until they caused him to apostatize.
They then demanded of him, that he should go about the country
for a whole year, with Doctor Gallius, and preach against and
renounce the divine truth. This he would not do; hence they
confined him in prison; for he had been a priest before he
became a brother. He came to himself and repented of his
apostasy, and great fear came upon him, for the judgment of God
pressed upon him; but since God knew his sorrowful heart, He so
ordered it that he was restored again, as will follow in the
sequel.</p>

<p>In the same year, 1538, Offrus Greizinger, also a minister
of the Word in the Earldom of Tyrol, was apprehended. He was
sought on the mountains and in the valley, and spied on bridges
and elsewhere. A large sum of money was also offered for his
apprehension, and spies and traitors were sent out, who
pretended to have a desire to become pious. When they had
apprehended him, he was also brought to Brixen and put in
prison there, his apartment being so near to that of Leonhard
Lochmair's, that they could converse together. There Leonhard
greatly deplored his apostasy to Offrus, and sorrowed greatly
on account of it. Offrus then gave him much consolation, when,
after genuine sorrow and true repentance, he proclaimed to him
the remission of his sins in the name of the Lord; yea, through
his intercession, re-established him in his faith, and received
him again as a fellow member and brother.</p>

<p>Not long after, when Brother Offrus, the faithful servant of
the Lord and His church, was sorely tried in manifold ways, and
much threatened with the torture, if he would not point out to
them his brethren who had not yet been driven away, especially
those who had harbored him, and done good to him, he said to
them, "I have resolved to endure all pain and suffering which
man can endure, even unto death, through the power of God,
before I shall tell you this, and become a traitor. I well knew
beforehand that this would be my fate. You have me in your
power, do whatever Gad will permit you to do; if you want to
tyrannize over me, you may do so; God will find you. I have
nothing to say or to show." They then assailed him with
threats, and urged him that if he had the truth, they would
admonish him in the name of the truth, to show and speak the
truth. Then Brother Offrus said, "I know you and your truth; you
have heard what I said."</p>

<p>They also asked him whether it was not true that if our
numbers should increase, we would rise up against and kill
them, if they would not come over to our side? He told them
that if we should do</p>

</div><div id="450"> 

<p>this, we would not be Christians, but only such in name;
adding, "If you were true Christians you would not torture or
kill any one." Hence they bound him, and drew him up, but
speedily let him down from the torture, and threatened him,
asking why he would have his members thus torn asunder. He
replied, "I am in your hands; do with me, whatever God will
permit you to do; you can take from me no more than my life."
They then despaired of accomplishing anything with him.</p>

<p>Eight days after, they again drew him up, this time twice,
yet more gently: but he said, "I have told you once what I can
tell, and be it known to you that God will find you for your
tyranny." They again despaired, and thenceforth left him alone,
torturing him no further. He was sick in consequence of the
torture, so that he said the less.</p>

<p>After another eight days, they again came to him, called him
before them twice, but did not remain with him long, because he
laid before their eyes their rascality, roguery, and
unrighteousness.</p>

<p>After much suffering and tribulation he was then sentenced
to death by the children of Pilate, placed alive into the fire,
and burned to ashes; thus valiantly and steadfastly, as a
Christian hero, testifying to and sealing his life and
doctrine, with his blood, on Halloween, A. D. 1538. And though
he had previously wrestled hard with death, yet when he went
forth unto death, he was glad and joyful in his heart.</p>

<p>But as Leonhard Lockmair had formerly been a priest, the
priests prevented his dying together with Offrus; for they
intended first to divest him of their accursed ordination. In
this, in order to bring to naught their counsel, God so ordered
it, that the suffragan who was to do this, died. Thus he was
executed with the sword, a .few days after Offrus, and, as a
true priest, offered up and gave himself as an acceptable
offering unto God, and testified to His truth unto death. Rom.
12:l; II Tim. 4:6.</p>

<h2>MICHAEL WIDEMAN OR BECK, A. D. 1538</h2> 

<p>About this time also Brother Michael Wideman or Beck was
apprehended at Ricten in Allgau, together with some other
persons, which other persons, however, were sent home, while
this brother was put in prison for the faith. Many things were
resorted to with him, and he was admonished to renounce, but he
had a good assurance of his faith in Christ, and said, "When I
was living with the world in all unrighteousness, in sins and
wickedness, no one admonished me to renounce, but I was
considered a good Christian before the world. But now that I
have become converted, and amended my life, I am told to
renounce; but I have become converted once, and have renounced
all unrighteousness, and in this conversion I will persevere
unto the end, and will not be turned from it, for that in which
I stand is the true foundation." After being imprisoned almost
half a year, he was beheaded and burned.</p>

<h2>MARTIN OF VILGRATEN, AND CASPAR SCHU
MACHER, A. D. 1538</h2> 

<p>In the year 1538, the brethren Martin of Vilgraten, and
Caspar Schumacher, were both apprehended for the divine truth,
at Michelsberg, in Priesterthal, and, after great
steadfastness, sentenced to death, and executed with the sword;
thus manfully persevering in the faith unto the end. They were
of good cheer in their bonds and tribulation, and held fast to
the love of God, from which they could not be separated through
tribulation, fear, persecution, hunger, poverty, nakedness, or
danger. No sword was so keen, no fire so hot, no devil so
wicked, no man so diligent, as to turn them from God and His
truth, and from their Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ; but they,
through the grace and power of God, kept that which God had
given them to know, even unto death.</p>

<h2>JOHN STYAERTS, AND PETER, A. D. 1538</h2> 

<p>About this year, there were, in Flanders, two cousins, one
named Styaerts, the other Peter. These two blooming and
God-seeking youths resided with their parents in a village
called Mereedor, in Flanders. And as they were very zealous for
God, and searched the holy Scriptures, they soon perceived,
that the believing and regenerated -according to the doctrine
of Christ, as a sign of having buried the former sins, and
risen with Christ, and walking in newness of life-had to
receive Christian baptism, in the water; and since they were
desirous of this, they journeyed to Germany, to seek others of
their fellow believers. But as they could not find such as
suited their wishes, they soon returned to their parents in
Flanders, where they earnestly sought the Lord their God, so
that they had a good report, doing much good to the poor, and
saying with Zaccheus, that if they had defrauded any one, they
would restore it fourfold. Luke 19:8. When the blinded papists,
who most bitterly hated the light of truth, perceived this,
they took these two young lambs out of the houses of their
parents, at Mereedor, and brought them beyond Ghent, into a
village called Vinderhout, where they most severely imprisoned
them in a dungeon. Jer. 38:6. Once when their sister came to
bring them some fine shirts, they told her that they could not
keep them from the worms, which were in their food, eating it,
and in their clothes and shirts on their bodies. They further
said, "Here is a Bible, the contents of which, as well as the
cause of our bonds, will yet come to light after our death."
The aforesaid John Styaerts was once released from prison, on
account of sickness, and, as is thought, could easily have
obtained his liberty; but he voluntarily returned to prison,
desiring gladly to die with his dear brother</p>

</div><div id="451"> 

<p>for the name of Jesus. Thus after a certain time they were
led to the slaughter. Peter; who came forth first to die,
casting his eyes up to heaven, boldly called out to John
Styaerts, "Fight valiantly, my dear brother; for I see the
heavens open above us." Acts 7:56. They were together put to
death with the sword at Vinderhout. Thus these young branches
in the court of the Lord (Jer. '17:8; Ps. 1:3), were also
devoured by the awful beast which rose up out of the sea (Rev.
13:1), but they had no power over their immortal souls, which
escaped from them unto God, where they, shall forever live in
unspeakable joy. When their parents came from Mereedor to
Vinderhout, and inquired for their children, the villagers told
them that they had already been executed with the sword. And
thus they were deprived of their children by these tyrants.</p>

<h2>HANS SEYEL, AND HANS OF WELS, A. D. 1538</h2> 

<p>In the same year, 1538, on Wednesday before Christmas, Hans
Seyel of Mur, and Hans of Wels, were apprehended for the faith
and .the divine truth, at Sandweid, in Kaernthen. After,
valiant steadfastness in the faith, they were condemned to
death and executed with the sword; thus, even unto death,
boldly testifying with their blood, to the way of truth, from
which they would not depart as long as their eyes were open,
and breath remained in their nostrils.</p>

<h2>OF A CERTAIN DECREE PUBLISHED IN ENGLAND
AGAINST THE ANABAPTISTS, A. D. 1538,
AND WHAT FOLLOWED THEREUPON, A. D. 1539</h2> 
<p>"After manifold tyranny, persecution and putting to death,"
writes P. J. Twisck,"in various countries and kingdoms, against
the Christian flock, also in England a decree was proclaimed,
in December, A. D. 1538, against the believers baptized
according to the ordinance of Christ. By virtue of the same,
they, right in the face of cold winter, were banished from the
country, and had to flee whithersoever they could.</p>

<p>Thus it came, that some of them fled for refuge to Holland,
and having come to Delft, they were there spied out by their
enemies, and fell into the hands of .the tyrants; and, after .
manifold trials, and steadfastness in their faith, they were
sentenced to death for the truth, at said place, and, on the
7th of January, A. D. 1539, put to death. Sixteen men were
beheaded with the sword, and fifteen women drowned.</p>

<p>These sixteen men and fifteen women, thirty-one persons in
all, who, in the year 1539, fled from England to Delft, and
were there put to death. in the same year, for the true
confession, of Jesus Christ, must plainly and positively be
distinguished from other twenty seven persons who lost their
lives there one year earlier, namely, A. D. 1538;whose written
examinations and death - sentences we have seen; but as we have
not found sufficient light therein, we pass them by, commending
them to God, and thus take our leave of them.</p>

<h2>APOLLONIA, WIFE OF LEONHARD SEYLE,
A. D. 1539</h2> 

<p>In the year 1539, one sister Apollonia; wife of Leonhard
Seyle, having been with. him in the upper country, was
apprehended in the Earldom of Tyrol, and brought to Brixen;
but, through the immutable grace and power of God, who
valiantly aided her womanly heart, she constantly and firmly
continued in the true faith, and in what she had promised God
in Christian baptism, and would depart neither to the right nor
to the left. Hence she was then sentenced to death, and
drowned, thus receiving the martyrs' crown.</p>

<h2>GREAT PERSECUTION IN AUSTRIA, A.; D. 1539</h2> 

<p>In said year, 1539, the church having dwelt for a little
while at Steinborn, in Austria, and having begun to increase
there, the old serpent, the envious and arch-wicked satan, who
so miserably tormented the pious, could not endure or overlook
it, but in his wrath stirred up the children of wickedness,
especially the priests, who in all this are his agents and
executors; so that they constantly filled the ears of King
Ferdinand with their unjust accusations of the pious, and
instigated him, so that he complied with their demand, and sent
his Marshal from Vienna, with provosts and a number of
horsemen, who unexpectedly came to Falkenstein, whence they
took with them a great mob, and fell upon the church at
Steinborn, on the 6th day of December, in the evening or at
night, in the abovementioned year. All the men whom they found,
they put into one room, and thus they also did with the women
and maidens. With great tumult and noise they kept watch during
the night, and brought in all whom they could find. Their chief
intention was to apprehend the elders and ministers of the
church, hoping to obtain much money from their people, and thus
deprive the poor people of their sustenance, notwithstanding
God would severely punish such wickedness. But God through His
providence prevented them, so that they could not find a single
minister. In every nook and corner they rummaged for the
sustenance of widows and orphans, and persevered greatly in
their ungodly assiduity. But God. brought to naught and folly
their counsel, when they thought to find wealth among the poor.
In their tyranny they apprehended sick people, children, and
pregnant women, so that it could have moved a heart of stone to
the deepest, and enduring compassion.</p>

<p>The imprisoned brethren and sisters made themselves ready to
offer up their bodies and lives unto God, whether through fire
or through the sword. On the evening when this persecution
took</p>

</div><div id="452"> 

<p>place, some men of Philip's people had also- come, with the
intention of making known to them the ground of the church, and
of their whole life. Thus as many as a hundred and fifty
brethren were together apprehended, and, well guarded, were
brought up to the,castle of Falkenstein. Among their number
there were some who had not yet received the baptismal covenant
of grace; as also some who had apostatized from the truth, and
were now penitents. Having all arrived in the castle of
Falkenstein, they conferred with those who had not yet bound
themselves in the faith. These they asked what they purposed to
do in this tribulation, and told them that, if they, for the
testimony and honor of God, would firmly adhere; in all
suffering, to the Lord Christ, whatever distress and anguish
might befall them, they would consider them fellow companions
in the kingdom of Christ, and hope that God would be gracious
to them</p>

<p>however, with this understanding, that with those who
through the providence of God should be released, and return to
the church,. the latter should have authority, by virtue of the
Lord's command, to deal according to their confession,in the
proper measure and order; and since .they had this intention
and resolution, they would write to the elders and the
churches, and afterwards give them full information.</p>

<p>Thereupon they all indicated their willingness, and, with a
joyful heart and great thankfulness, desired to accept this
covenant as a grace of God. Immediately upon this, the church
was informed of it by letter. A written answer speedily came,
that all the believers were well satisfied with this
resolution; since such as had not yet been incorporated,
according to- divine ordinance, into the church, but agreed
with it in all things, and desired to show forth an honest
testimony of the truth, ,to suffer with it and to give their
lives for it in this extremity, might well be received as
fellow believers.</p>

<p>When they were again informed of the decision of the church,
they willingly entrusted themselves to the Lord, manifested,
patience in all tribulation, as others of .the pious, and made
a good confession before many witnesses. While they were yet at
Falkenstein, King Ferdinand sent his Marshal, several doctors
from among the priests; and the executioner, that, they should
go to them. These; on Christmas night, which is customarily
celebrated in every country, began to deal with much craftiness
with the imprisoned witnesses of the truth; they also put
subtle questions to some of them, as to what was their
ground-and hope, and where their treasure or money was.
Thereupon they confessed in truth, that Christ was their Lord
and Saviour, their only comfort, their only hope, their dearest
heart-treasure and best portion, in whom .they received God's
help and grace. They also treated with them about other
articles, and wanted to instruct, teach, and convert them, as
they said, especially with regard to their sacrament, which
theyhighly extolled, and would have them believe that the
flesh.and blood of Christ were present in it, and that it was
our Lord God, as they said but the brethren answered that it
was a dumb god, and that the Lord's Supper had quite a
different signification than, they perversely represented, tnus
shamefully deceiving and seducing the world. With these and
many other contessions the king's messengers returned to
Vienna; but these imprisoned brethren remained in custody in
the castle of 1~ alkenstem.</p>

<p>Thus it continued until the beginning of the year 1540, when
the kings marshal came, together with a Spaniard, the Provost
of the Empire, and other horsemen with their equipments. T hese
further examined the imprisoned Brethren, and those who did not
comply with their demands, but held to the truth contessed,
they speedily laid in iron chains and bonds, coupling them two
and two together by their hands. In the meantime many of the
sisters, their fellow believers, came into the castle of
Falkenstein, when the prisoners were to be taken to the sea;
some were waiting' for the imprisoned brother Eegmachel, and
others were particularly engaged in earnest and fervent prayer
and supplication to God Almighty, that He would keep them from
all wrong and sinful action, on sea as well as on land, and
also give them a steadfast mind, and grant that they might
persevere in the With unto the end. Alter this prayer, a
Spaniard was commanded to send all of them away. Hence they
began to take leave from one another, with many scalding tears
and weeping eyes, affectionately admonishing each other, that
each should firmly and unfalteringly adhere to the Lord and the
truth confessed. Time and again they commended each other to
the gracious protection of God, not knowing whether in their
lifetime they should ever see each other again with their
bodily eyes. Thus man and wife had to separate from each other,
and leave their little children; which flesh and blood would
not have been equal to, had it not been done through the power
of God, and for His sake. This leave-taking was so pitiful,
that the king's marshal, and others like him, could not keep
back their tears. When everything was arranged, and the escort
was ready, the pious went forth, firmly trusting in God, that
.He would aid and deliver them. Thus they were brought from the
tower, two and two together, ninety in all, after having been
confined five weeks and a half in Falkenstein; but the sisters
had to remain in the castle, and from the walls, looked after
the brethren, with much sighing and sorrow, as long as they
could see them.</p>

<p>After this, the sisters were all sent away from the castle
to the place where they resided; but the brethren whom they did
not want to take to the sea; on account of infirmity or
sickness, and some because of their youth, they retained as
prisoners in the castle; now and then they gave some of the
young lads as slaves to Austrian nobles; however, nearly all of
them returned to the church; the</p>

</div><div id="453"> 

<p>others remained in the castle, and for them God also wrought
a gracious deliverance.</p>

<p>The cause of this great distress of the pious was solely,
that in antichristendom they testified against the idolatrous
and unrighteous life and ways of the priests, for which, as an
abomination, God should once severely punish them, and make an
end with them and their sins. Hence, King Ferdinand gave the
crew of priests, who are a band of robbers, and delight in
killing and slaying, power to do with them as they pleased.
These condemned them as worthy of death, that they should not
be tolerated on the earth, but should be sent to sea, thus to
wear out their lives in much anguish and distress, as a warning
to other brethren; and that the other three should be delivered
into the hands of the Admiral of the Armada on the sea, and be
employed on the galleons, in pillaging and waging war against
the Turks and other enemies; though these imprisoned brethren
previously told the messengers of the king, that they would not
go against the enemy, to pillage and wage war, neither would
they consent to do wrong on the sea just as little as on the
land, nor sin against God in heaven; and that, since it was
contrary to their faith and conscience, God through His
unconquerable power, and His grace, could preserve them on the
sea as well as on the land. Nevertheless, these witnesses of
the divine truth were led, through the king's messengers and
his strict command to the authorities, through cities, towns
and villages, to be brought from one court to another. In this
they suffered much and manifold adversity and great sorrow; but
God always granted them gracious means, particularly in this,
that every morning and evening they could all unmolestedly pray
to God, and that one brother could without hindrance comfort
the other; which they accepted very gratefully as a special
grace and gift of God.</p>

<p>By this and the ordering of their whole life they convinced
the people in many places, so that many who at their arrival
regarded them as malefactors, had great compassion on them.
Moreover, the king's servants, their conductors, frequently
bore them testimony, and told them that they should not pass
silently through the cities and towns, but should make their
faith known by singing or otherwise.</p>

<p>Thus the faithful company was led, like a flock of sheep,
through countries and cities, to the sea; journeying from the
castle of Falkenstein to Vienna, thence to Neustadt and
Schottwien, over the Semmering, to Bruck-on-the-Mur, to the
borders of Bavaria, to Luebeck and Marburg, to Tiele, to Stein,
in Carniola, over the Save to Laibach, but still no comfort
came. During their imprisonment there they had to suffer much
hunger and distress; they were fed with the bread of anguish,
and had to drink the water of sorrow; but thus it was the will
of God to reveal His Word and truth in every place and country,
and to make it known to the nations that were ignorant of it,
and to let them hearthe sound thereof; even as He always
provides gracious means to lure men away from unrighteousness,
so also here, where these witnesses of the faith and the divine
truth were led to many and various places, and also to places
where strange languages were spoken, where the truth had not
been heard, and where it was unknown and hidden among the
nations. They caused some from Carniola to search after the
truth, and thereby some attained to a knowledge of it, who are
still at this day serving God with a sincere heart. But how
these captive brethren, while on their journey, were treated in
many places, how they were beaten, driven, and coupled together
with ropes and chains, and what resulted to them from this,
would be too long to write; still, however great the
tribulation they suffered, God always comforted them in their
hearts.</p>

<p>But since God always remembers His own for the best, even
when in the greatest fear, and never entirely forgets them, He
strengthened some in their imprisonment, so that they trusted
in God with a good assurance and hope, that He would work for
and show them a deliverance. Therefore they prayed with the
others in the fear of God, though they were firmly resolved to
suffer for the truth of God, and to die rather than to
participate in wicked piracy; yet they had reason enough,
constantly to persevere in prayer to God, with heartfelt
lamentation and sighing, that He would promote His divine honor
in them. In this God showed them, how they should hold proper
converse with each other, the strong care for the weak, and
assist one another. And though they had but very little
sustenance, yet they trusted in the Lord, that He would provide
for them, so that they should not have to beg for their bread.
Then, on the twelfth night, at Trieste, they were all delivered
from their chains and bonds, and went out of prison. Through
the providence of God a place was shown them, where they all in
the same hour let themselves down by cords from the walls of
the city. Thus the very bonds in which they had been brought
thither as prisoners, had to minister to their deliverance.</p>

<p>From this it can be seen, that; though the ungodly devise
many things against the pious, God always turns it for the best
to His people. Thus, through the providence of God, fney
escaped from the hands of their enemies, in spite of the
watchful guards whom they had placed in the city and upon the
walls; for God changed their prudence to folly, so that they
escaped over the walls right near the guardhouse.</p>

<p>When all of them, both sick and well, had escaped over the
walls a good many of them gathered together, knelt down, and
together offered praise and thanks to God. God thus sped them
on their way, that the greater part of them returned with joy
and glad hearts to the church in Moravia. Twelve of them,
however, were recaptured by the wicked, who pursued them, and,
together with the</p>

</div><div id="454"> 

<p>other three, they were delivered to the Emperor's Admiral
over the Armada, taken to sea, and brought upon the galleons,
with the intention of employing them as pirates, but the pious
risked their lives, and would rather be scourged. But as to the
end of each one of these nothing certain is yet known, but, it
is to be supposed that, if they constantly adhered. to the
Lord, they did not have many -good days while they lived. But
the abovementioned brethren whom God had delivered, when they,
about the year 1540 returned from Trieste to the church in
Moravia, they were received with great joy and gratitude, as a
gift from God.</p>

<h2>ANNA OF ROTTERDAM, PUT TO DEATH IN THAT
PLACE, A. D. 1539</h2> 

<p>The following is the Testament which Anna of Rotterdam left
and presented to her son, Isaiah, on the twenty-fourth of
January; A. D. 1539, at nine o'clock in the morning, as she was
preparing herself to die .for the name and the testimony of
Jesus, and took leave of her son, at Rotterdam.</p>

<p>Isaiah, receive your testament, "My son, hear the instruction of your mother; open your ears
to hear the words of my mouth. Prov. 1:8. Behold, I go today
the way of the prophets, apostles and martyrs, and drink of the
cup of which they all have drank. Matt. 20:23. I go, I say, the
way which Christ Jesus, the eternal Word of the Father, full of
grace and truth, the Shepherd of the sheep, who is the Life,
Himself went, and who went this way, and not another, and who
had to drink of this cup, even as He said: 'I have a cup to
drink of, and a baptism to be baptized with; and how am I
straitened till it be accomplished!' Having passed through, He
calls His sheep, and; His sheep hear His voice, and follow Him
whithersoever He goes; for this is the way to the true
fountain. John 10:27; 4:14. This way was traveled by the royal
priests who came from the rising of the sun, as we read in
revelation, and entered into the ages of eternity, and had to
drink of this cup.' I Peter 2:9., "This way was trodden by the dead under the altar, who cry,
saying: Lord, Almighty God, when wilt Thou avenge the blood
that has been shed? White robes were given unto them, and it
was said to them; Wait yet for a little season, until the
number of your brethren that are yet to be killed for the
testimony of Jesus, be fulfilled. Rev. 6:9-11. These also drank
of the cup, and are gone above to keep the eternal, holy
Sabbath of the Lord. This is the way in which walked the
twenty-four elders, who stand before the throne of God, and
cast their crowns and harps before the throne of the Lamb,
falling down upon their faces, and saying: Lord, unto Thee
alone be praise, glory, power, and strength, who shalt avenge
the blood of Thy servants and ministers, and shalt through
Thyself gain the victory. Great be Thy name, Almighty, which
was, and is, and is to come. Rev. 4:8, 10., "In this way walked also those who were marked by the Lord,
and received the mark Thau upon their foreheads (Ezek. 9:6),
who were chosen from among all nations of men, who were not
defiled with women .(understand this), and who follow the Lamb
whithersoever He goeth. Rev. 14:4., "Behold, all these had to drink of the cup of bitterness, as
,will also all those have to do, who are still wanting to
complete the number and fulfillment of Zion, the bride of the
Lamb, which is the new Jerusalem coming down out of heaven
(Rev. 21:2), the city and throne of God, in which the glory of
the great King shall be seen, when the feast of tabernacles
will be kept and celebrated in the days of eternal rest and
joy. Zech. 14:16., "Behold, all these could not attain to this, without first
suffering judgment and chastisement in their flesh; for Christ
Jesus, the eternal truth, was the first, when it is written:
'The Lamb slain from the foundation of the world.' Rev. 13:8.
So Paul says: 'Thus it pleased the Father, that all whom He
predestinated from eternity, He called, elected, justified, and
made to be conformed to the image of His Son.' Rom. 8:29, 30.
Our blessed Saviour also says: The servant is not above his
Lord; but it is sufficient for .him, that: he be like his Lord
and Master. Matt. 10:24. Also Peter says: 'The time has come
that judgment must begin at the house of God: and if it first
begin at us, what shall the end be of them that obey not the
gospel of God? And if the righteous scarcely be saved, where
shall the ungodly and the sinner appear?' I Pet. 4:17, 18. Read
also in Proverbs (11:31): 'Behold, the righteous shall be
recompensed in the earth: much more the wicked and the sinner.'
See, my son, here you can hear that no one can come unto life,
except through this way. Therefore enter in through the strait
gate, receive the chastisement and instruction of the Lord, bow
your shoulders under His yoke, and cheerfully bear it from your
youth, with thanksgiving, rejoicing and honor; for He accepts
or receives no son, whom He does not chasten. Hebrews 12:6.
Paul further says: 'If you forsake the chastisement, whereof
they were all partakers, ye are bastards, and not children, and
shall be cast out from the inheritance of the children of
God.', "If you, therefore, desire to enter into the regions of the
holy world, and into the inheritance of the saints, gird your
loins, and follow after them; search the Scriptures, and it
shall show you their ways. John 5:39. The angel who spake to
the prophet said: 'There is also another thing: A city is
builded, and set upon a broad field, and is full of all good
things: the entrance thereof is narrow, and set in a dangerous
place to fall, like as if there were a fire on the right hand,
and on the left a deep water: and one only path between them
both, even between the fire and the water, so small that there
could but one man go there at once. If this city now were given
unto a man for an inheritance, if he never shall pass the
danger set before it, how shall he receive this inheritance?'
II Esd. 7:6-9.</p>

</div><div id="455"> 

<p>See, my son, this way has no retreats; there are no
roundabout or crooked little paths; whosoever departs to the
right or to the left, inherits death: Behold, this is the way
which is found by so few, and walked by a still far smaller
number; for there are some who well perceive that this is the
way to life; but it is too severe for them; it pains their
flesh., "Therefore, my child, do not regard the great number, nor
walk in their ways. Remove thy foot far from their paths, for
they go to hell, as sheep unto death; even as Isaiah says:
'Hell hath enlarged herself, and opened her mouth without
measure; and their glory, and their multitude . . . shall
descend into it.' Isa. 5:14. 'It is a people of no
understanding: therefore he that made them will not have mercy
on them.' Isa. 27:11. But where you hear of a poor, simple,
cast-off little flock (Luke 12:32), which is despised and
rejected, by the world, join them; for where you hear of the
cross, there is Christ; from there do not depart. Flee the
shadow of this world; become united with God; fear Him alone,
keep His commandments, observe all His words, to do them; write
them upon the table of your heart, bind them upon your
forehead, speak day and night of His law and you will be a
pleasant tree and a sprout in the courts of the Lord, a beloved
plant growing up in Zion. Ps. 92:13. Take the fear of the Lord
to be your father, and wisdom shall be the mother of your
understanding. If you know this. my son, happy are you if you
do it. John 13:17. Observe that which the Lord commands you,
and sanctify your body to His service, that His name may be
sanctified, praised, and made glorious and great in you. Be not
ashamed to confess Him before men; do not fear men; rather
give, up your life, than to depart from the truth. If you lose
your body, which is earthly, the Lord your God has prepared you
a better one in heaven. II Cor. 5:1., "Therefore, my child, strive for righteousness unto death,
and arm yourself with the armor of God. Be a pious Israelite,
tramnle under foot all. unrighteousness, the world and all that
is in it, and love only that which is above. I John 2:15.
Remember, that you are not of this world, even as your Lord and
Master was not. John 15:19. Be a faithful disciple of Christ;
for none is fit to pray, unless he has become His disciple' and
not before. Col. 1:7; john 9:31. Those who said: 'We have left
all.' also said: 'Teach us to pray.' Luke 18:28; 11:1. They
were those for whom the Lord prayed, and not the world (John
17:9); for when the world prays, they call uoon their father,
the devil, and desire that his will be done, as is also the
case. Therefore, my son, do not become like them, but shun and
flee them, and have neither part nor fellowship with them. Rom.
12:2; II Pet. 1:4. Do not regard that which is before your
eyes, but seek only those things which are above. Col. 3:1. O
my child, be mindful of my admonition, and forsake it not. May
the Lord cause you to grow up inHis fear, and fill your
understanding with His Spirit. II Peter 3:18. Sanctify yourself
to the Lord, my son; sanctify your whole conduct in the fear of
your God. Lev. 20:7. Whatever you do, do it all to the praise
of His name. Honor the Lord in the works of your hands, and let
the light of the Gospel shine through you. Love your neighbor.
Deal with an open; warm heart thy bread to the hungry, clothe
the naked, and suffer not to have anything twofold; for there
are always some who lack. Matt. 26:11. Whatever the Lord grants
you from the sweat of your face, above what you need,
communicate to those of whom you know that they love the Lord
(Genesis 3:19; Ps. 112:9); and suffer nothing to remain in your
possession until the morrow, and the Lord shall bless the work
of your hands, and give you His blessing for an inheritance.
Deut. 28:12. O my son, let your life be conformed to the
Gospel, and the God of peace, sanctify your soul and body, to
His praise. Amen. Phil. 1:27; I Thess. 5:23., "O holy Father, sanctify the son of. Thy handmaiden in Thy
truth, and keep him from the evil, for Thy name's sake, O
Lord."</p>

<p>Thereupon . she sealed this with her blood, and thus, as a
pious heroine and follower of Jesus Christ, she was received
among the number of the witnesses of God who were offered
up.</p>

<h2>TJAERT REYNERTS, A. D. 1539</h2> 

<p>About the year 1539, there was also a God-fearing peasant,
named Tjaert Reynerts, who lived near Harlinger, in Friesland.
He was brought a prisoner to Leeuwxrden, where he had to suffer
much for the truth, from the bloodthirsty papists. Proverbs
29:10. The cause of his imprisonment was, that, out of
compassion and brotherly love, he had secretly harbored Menno
Simons in his great misery, in his house. This having been
brought to the notice of the enemies, he was apprehended and
very cruelly examined; but he, as a valiant hero and witness of
Jesus (Rev. 2:13; 20:4), would not forsake his Creator in this
extremity, but freely and undauntedly confessed the faith of
the everlasting truth against these tyrants and bloodthirsty
men; on which account he, at said place, as a chief of
murderers (according to the example of his Lord Jesus), was
placed upon the wheel, though even his greatest enemies bore
witness that he was an upright and pious man. I Tim. 3:7.</p>

<p>At this time the tyranny and persecution against the
God-fearing Christians was very dreadful, so that the envious
papists, who hated the truth, caused likenesses of many of the
principal teachers and overseers of the church of Jesus Christ
to be made, and posted up on doors, gates, and other public
places, promising a large sum of money, to such as should
deliver them into the hands of the officers and executioners.
And since the Godfearing Menno Simons, who was zealous for God,
was one of the principal teachers and elders in this</p>

</div><div id="456"> 

<p>bloody and perilous time, who, by his glorious admonitions,
and writings from the Word of God, so flourished, that none of
his adversaries dared come before him in an open and free
scriptural disputation, though he at various times and very
earn estly requested it; through which sound doctrine and
Christian admonition, and the power of 'the Most High, said
Menno Simons, drew, turned, and won to God a great number of
men, from dark and erring popery; yea, from the dumb idols, to
the living God. Therefore the servants of antichrist were
embittered the more against him, and, in order to quench and
hinder this, caused, A. D. 1543, a dreadful decree to be
proclaimed against him throughout.all West Friesland; in which
all malefactors and murderers were offered remission of their
crimes, the pardon of the Emperor, the freedom of the country,
and one hundred Carl Guilders, if they could deliver Menno
Simons, into the hands of the torturers and executioners. But
though these envious men thirsted with such exceeding tyranny
and great bitterness for his blood, and sought and persecuted
him unto death, yet the Almighty God preserved him, and most
miraculously protected him from the designs of all his enemies,
so that they could not execute their tyrannical desires on him;
for he died a natural death, as God had appointed it to him, at
Wuestefeld, near Luebeck, on the 13th of January, in the year
1559, in his sixty-sixth year. Ps. 31:15; Job 14:5; Ps. 139:
16.</p>

<p>He that desires, may read <i>Menno Simons, contra Gallius
Faber, fol.</i> 23, where the offering of Tjaert Reynerts is
referred to.*</p>

<h2>ARENT JACOBS, WITH HIS WIFE AND ELDEST SON,
A. D. 1539</h2> 

<p>Even as it was in the time of ' Esau and Jacob, that he that
was born after the flesh persecuted him that was born after the
Spirit (Gen. 27:l; Galatians 4:29), so it was also abundantly
witnessed in this time; which, among others, appeared in the
case of one God-fearing brother named Arent Jacobs, and his
wife and eldest son. These resided in the Rijp, and being. born
again from above of God, and seeking the eternal inheritance
which is reserved for such in heaven, they were hated and
persecuted unto death by the followers of Esau, who brought
them prisoners from the Rijp to Monickendam, in North Holland,
where they had to suffer much for' the truth; but as they were
built upon Christ, and suffered themselves by no torments to be
led away, they were, at said place, A. D. 1539, sentenced to
suffer death by drowning, which was accordingly done. To this
end heavy stones were used, which the executioner was not able
to lift, so that -the prisoners were obliged to assist him.
Thus, like irrational beasts they were cast into the water,
with stones tied to</p>

<br /><cite>*"Menno Simons' Complete Works," English
Edition, published by John F. Funk and Brother, Elkhart,
Indiana, 1871, part first, page 8.</cite> 

<p>their necks, and so departed this life. Thus they did not
love their lives, but surrendered them unto death for the
witness of Jesus, who at His glorious coming shall raise their
rejected bodies from the dead, and crown them with immortality
in heaven. Rev, 12:11; 20.:4; II Thess. 1:7; Phil. 3:21; II
Tim. 4:8.</p>

<h2>BANS SIMERAVER, A. D. 1540</h2> 

<p>In the year 1540, Brother Hans Simeraver was imprisoned for
the divine truth, at Schwatz, in the valley of the Inn; but,as
they could not draw him from his faith, nor convince hiln with
the holy Scriptures, they delivered him to their high priest,
the executioner, who had to lead him out and conquer him. Thus
he was executed with the sword, and sealed his faith in God
with his blood, thus resisting unto blood, or striving against
sin and the abomination of 'desolation. Heb. 12:4; Matt. 24:
15. Therefore he shall also, on Mount Sion, among the great
number of those who testified to and confessed the name of God
in the world, receive a palm in his hands, and be crowned with
the unfading crown of life. II Esd. 2:45; II Tim. 4:8.</p>

 
  <h1>WALTER OF STOELWIJK, A. D. 1541</h1>

<p>On the eleventh of February, A. D. 1538, another pious and
faithful brother, named Walter of Stoelwijk, at Vilvoorden, in
Brabant, fell into the hands of the ravening wolves (Matt.
7:15), and had to suffer much for the truth, from these envious
papists. But he, as a wise builder, had founded his house upon
the firm and immovable rock, Christ Jesus; and therefore
remained steadfast in all these great trials, though he had to
suffer cruel imprisonment for three years, and much severe and
tyrannous examining and torturing from these bloodthirsty men.
Finally, on the 24th of March, in the year 1541, he was
sentenced and burned at said place. Thus he remained faithful
to his Lord and Creator unto death, and steadfastly confirmed
with his death and blood the genuine faith of the truth, and
his unwavering, living hope. He shall therefore, as an obedient
sheep, also hear the voice of the great Shepherd of the sheep
saying to him, "Come, ye blessed of my Father, inherit the
kingdom prepared for you from the foundation of the world."
John 10:3; Hell. 13:20; Matt. 25:34.</p>

<h2>A LETTER WRITTEN BY SAID WALTER OF STOELWIJK, TREATING OF THE SUFFERING AND THE
GLORY OF CHRISTIANS</h2> 

<p>Grace, peace, and mercy from God our heavenly Father, and
from Jesus. Christ our Lord and Saviour, be with all those who
live godly in Christ Jesus, and therefore suffer persecution,
to the glory and praise of the true God, to the trial of their
faith, and the eternal salvation of their souls. Amen. Rom.
1:7; I Cor, 1:3; II Cor. 1:2; Gal. 1:3; II Tim. 3:12,</p>

</div><div id="457"> 

<p>Blessed be God, the Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, who in
His unfathomable grace and mercy hath called us out of darkness
unto His marvelous light, and still daily lets His face shine
upon us, that we may know His way on the earth, and His
salvation among the Gentiles.- Yea, blessed, praised, and
glorified be God our most blessed Lord and most merciful
Father, who, through His unspeakable goodness, and not through
the merits of our works, has chosen us, through Jesus Christ,
to be His children, that we should be heirs of His eternal
kingdom, and inherit all things as true children and heirs of
God; children of God and joint heirs with Christ, if we do the
will of God our heavenly. Father, that we may be glorified with
Him, and enter into His glory. Tit. 3:5; II Tim. 1:9; Eph. 2:6;
Rom. 8:17. For it is true what Christ says, "Not everyone that
saith unto me, Lord, Lord, shall enter into the kingdom of
heaven; but he that doeth the will of my Father which is in
heaven." Matt. 7:21. Now it is the will of our heavenly Father,
that we deny ourselves, take up our cross, and follow Jesus
Christ.</p>

<p>In the first place, we must deny ourselves; that is, we must
forsake our own will, and surrender ourselves wholly to Jesus
Christ, so that according to the words of the apostle, we live
no more unto ourselves, but unto Jesus Christ, who died for us,
that He may be Lord both of the dead and living, and that no
one shall live unto himself, but unto Him who died for him, and
rose again. O to deny themselves, and desire only to do the
will of God; yea, how many do not yet know which is the true
will of God, but hold to the doctrine and commandments of the
Roman pope, and antichrist, and are in such a condition, that
they do not know Jesus Christ. To these, the Almighty God,
according to the pleasure of His will. must open the eyes of
their understanding, with the radiance of His grace, that they
may emerge from this blindness into the true light, and know
with all the saints, what is the delusion and sorcery of the
Babylonian whore (Rev. 18:2), and that the teachings and
commandments of Christ Jesus alone are to be kept, yea, that we
must follow and preserve only the teachings and commandments of
Christ Jesus, and that we may in no wise live according to our
own will, but are to consider that Christ Jesus Himself did not
His own will, but the will of His Father, who sent Him; which
was done and written for our admonition and instruction, that
we should not fulfill our own will, which, because of the
innate wickedness of our cursed nature, is prone to evil; but
the acceptable and perfect will of God, so that we may pray
aright, as Christ has taught us, saying: Heavenly Father, Thy
will be done in earth, as it is in heaven. Matt. 6:9, 10. How
many there are who do not say this with a good heart, but with
false lips, even as Judas said to Christ, "Hail, Master" (Matt.
26:49; Mark 14:45; Luke 22:47) , at the same time betraying
Him; so they say with the mouth, that God's will is to be done;
while at the same time all their thoughts and works are
contrary to the will of God. These are those real false
Christians who say to Christ Jesus, "Lord, Lord," and yet do not
what He has commanded them. These are the true Pharisees, the
hypocritical saints, who honor God with their lips, while their
heart is far from Him. These are the true unbelievers of whom
St. Paul says that with their words they profess to know God,
but in works deny Him, so that they are abominable to the Lord,
because they are disobedient to Him, and reprobate unto every
good work. Yea, these are the true hypocrites,' the disciples
of deceitful Satan, who have learned from their master, to
disguise their inward craftiness, and outwardly to adorn
themselves with a beautiful appearance. Such hypocrites the
Lord will forever curse and cast out, and say to them, "Depart
from me, ye workers of iniquity; I know you not." Matt. 7:23;
Ps. 6:8. But He will bless the pious Christians and bless and
glorify the good and true disciples of Jesus Christ, who deny
themselves, and have surrendered themselves unto the will of
God, which is the true beginning of the Christian life, and
without which life can not be begun.</p>

<p>In the second place, we must take up our cross, namely
prepare ourselves for suffering, according to the teaching of
Jesus Sirach, who says, "My son; if thou come to serve the Lord,
prepare thy soul for temptation. Set thy heart aright, and
constantly endure, and make not haste in time of trouble.
Cleave unto him, and depart not away, that thou mayest be
increased at thy last end. Whatsoever is brought upon thee,
take cheerfully, and be patient when thou art changed to a low
estate. For gold is tried in the fire, and acceptable men in
the furnace of adversity." Sir. 2:1-5; Wisd. 3:6. With this
accords also what Paul says, "All that will live godly in Christ
Jesus shall suffer persecution." II Tim. 3:12. Yea Christ
Himself says to His apostles, "Ye shall be hated of all men for
my name's sake." Mark 13:13. From all these words it must
incontrovertibly follow, that all servants of God; all godly
men, all disciples of Jesus Christ, must suffer persecution for
His name's sake; and be tried through manifold temptations.</p>

<p>Therefore it is an awful blindness, that men boast of the
Gospel and Christianity, and know what belongs to a Christian
life, but, alas! they have the least thought of suffering
anything for the name of Christ Jesus; yea, though they know
and confess that all the works which take place in papal
desolation are evil, and nothing but blasphemy against God, yet
have they fellowship therewith, and commit the most shameful
idolatry, in order that they may avoid and escape the cross, in
which cross all pious Christians may glory (Gal. 6:14)-and
still they want to be considered good Christians. O what wicked
servants ! O what wicked disciples! Wicked servants we say,
because they would be above their Lord Jesus Christ;</p>

</div><div id="458"> 

<p>wicked disciples we say, since they reject and condemn the
doctrine of their Master Jesus Christ. O people, people,
mockers of the living God! who think to deceive God with your
dissimulation, and to pay Him with words, unmindful of the
words of Paul; namely: that the kingdom of God is not in word,
but in power I I Cor. 4:20. O people, true hypocrites! who
fancy that they serve Christ, but how far are they from
glorying with Paul, the pious and faithful minister of Christ,
only in the cross of Christl Gal. 6:14. O miserable people, who
would rather now live for ,a little season in peace and
voluptuousness with the Babylonian whore, and afterwards be
tormented with her in everlasting pain, than suffer with Christ
Jesus for a little while, and thus enter into eternal
glory!</p>

<p>Ah! the true saints and servants of God did differently;
they would rather suffer death, than transgress the commandment
of God. Pious Joseph would rather go to prison; yea, into
death, than offend the Lord his God, and commit adultery with
the adulterous woman. Gen. 39:8. Moses, the ardent and jealous
lover of God, through his faith, chose rather to suffer
affliction with the people of God, than to live in carnal and
worldly lusts with the Egyptians; esteeming the reproach of
Christ greater riches than all the treasures of Egypt; for he
had respect unto the recompense of the reward. Ex. 2:11; Heb.
11:25. Shadrach, Meshach and Abednego feared God the Lord more
than all the torments of the tyrannous king, and would rather
die a temporal death, and adhere to their God, than deny Him.
Dan. 3:16. Daniel who was rich in spirit and strong in faith,
did not shrink from the den of lions, in which he would rather
be cast, than worship any strange God. Dan. 6. The pious Tobit
would rather transgress, the commandment of the king at the
peril of his lie, than to forsake God his Lord; wherefore he
also commanded his son, to fear God all his life, and never to
let his will be set to sin, or to transgress the commandments
of God his Lord. Tobit 1:18; 4:5. Eleazar, the pious Israelite
would rather die for the law of God, than act contrary to it;
yea, than to dissimulate once, and thus cause offense in
Israel. The mother and her'seven sons were so ardent in the
love of God, that they were not afraid of all the tyranny of
the wicked king, nor would they act contrary to the law of God,
but much rather suffer a severe death for it. II Macc. 7. Yea,
how many saints and witnesses of Jesus Christ are still hated,
persecuted and slain by the Babylonian whore, because they will
not drink of the wine of her fornication, or have fellowship
with her idolatrous works.</p>

<p>Therefore all hypocritical saints, all wicked hypocrites,
who boast of being called Christians, yet will not suffer for
the name of Christ, may well be ashamed. Christ may justly say
to them: If I be your Lord, why do you not keep My
commandments? if I be your Master, why do you not hear and
believe My words? Mal. 1:6; Luke 6:46. Wellthen, let all
hypocrites, and falsely prudent, unfaithful servants, and
falsely wise disciples of Jesus Christ, depart from their Lord
and Master, we nevertheless, through the grace of God, intend
to adhere to Christ, and are ready to suffer for His sake, even
as He suffered for our sakes. But He suffered as Lord, and we
as disciples; hence we servants and disciples must not bear the
cross reluctantly seeing our Lord and Master Himself bore
it.</p>

<p>In the third place, we must follow Jesus, but not as did
many Jews, who followed Him, because they had eaten of the
loaves; which, alas! many false Christians still do, who join
the Christian church, not because they truly seek Christ Jesus,
not because they love the truth, but that they may be aided and
fed by the Christian church (whom they perceive to be the most
charitable). But to follow Christ in this manner is nothing but
a mockery of God, and Christ will not have such followers, as
we may clearly understand from the case of the scribe whom
Christ condemned, because he wanted to follow Him from
covetousness; for the Lord beheld the heart of the
scribe, and therefore did not answer him according to his
words, but according to his thoughts, saying, "The foxes have
holes, and the birds of the air have nests; but the Son of man
hath not where to lay his head." Matt. 8:20; Luke 9:58. Just as
if Jesus had intended to say: If you will follow me, follow me
in the manner in which I go before you. For Christ well knew
his intention, namely, that he wanted to follow Him for gain,
and thought that Christ should give him power to perform
wonderful signs and miracles, as He had given to His apostles,
by which he might have sought gain. But such designs are not
good, and cannot succeed; for the Lord Himself was poor (Zech.
9:9), as He declares: If I the Lord and Master am poor, it is
evident that My servants are poor, and that My disciples do not
seek or desire riches. As though the good Lord had meant to
say: He that would follow Me, must follow Me in the poverty in
which I walk before Him. But, alas! many people at the present
day think that gain is godliness, as Paul says (I Tim. 6:5),
and, under the semblance of the Gospel and the Christian name,
seek their own profit. O what perverted men! who will not go in
the right way, but follow the way of the traitor and thief
Judas, who loved the wages of unrighteousness; when he received
the awful punishment of his wickedness, as everyone know. Matt.
27:6; Mark 14:18; John 12:4. O what blinded men, who can not
take to heart that Ananias and Sapphira were put to such great
shame, and punished, for their equivocation, by which the
Almighty Lord God has undoubtedly given us an example, that all
hypocritical and double-minded men shall be thus put to shame
and punished; as we find in Jesus Sirach</p>

<p>Woe unto those that are of a double heart, to those of
wicked lips that enter the land by two ways. Therefore the wise
man also teaches us, that our</p>

</div><div id="459"> 

<p>hearts should be without any deceit and, dissimulation,
saying, "Be not obstinate, and distrust not the fear of the Lord
. . . and come not unto him with a double heart. Be not a
hypocrite in-.the sight of men, and take ,good heed what thou
speakest. Exalt not thyself, lest thou  fall,and bring dishonor
upon thy soul, and so God discover thy secrets, and cast thee
down, in the midst of the congregation, because thou camest not
in truth to the fear of the Lord, but thy heart is, full of
deceit."; Sir. 1:28-30.</p>

<p>O that all hypocrites would earnestly consider the words of
Jesus. Sirach, and reform, before they be confounded and
punished by God, which shall be done to all the double-minded,
if not now, yet in the day of judgment, when the .ungodly shall
not stand, nor sinners remain in the congregation of the
righteous. Ps. 1:5. Then.,Christ_ will bring to light what is
now in darkness, and make manifest the counsels of the
hearts; yea, He will take the fan into His hand, and purge His
floor, and, gather the wheat into the garner, but the chaff
will He burn up with unquenchable fire. Matt. 3:12; Luke 3:17.
Hence, let everyone beware of hypocrisy; and let him truly
follow Christ Jesus, as is proper, not with the Jews, for the
sake of the loaves, nor with the scribe, from covetousness.
But, O ye Christians, follow Christ, your Lord and Master with
a pure heart, a clean conscience, unfeigned faith, and ardent
love, without turning to the right or to. the left. But those
who follow Christ Jesus. differently, are among good Christians
what chaff is among the wheat, and their end will be
everlasting fire, from which the Almighty Father preserve us
through Jesus Christ.,</p>

<p>Moreover, we must, from ardent love, follow Jesus Christ
even unto the end, and not do as did some of His disciples, who
forsook Him, and became offended at His words, saying, "This is
a hard saying; who can hear it?" John 6:60. O how many are
unwilling to hear the divine words of our Lord Jesus Christ,
yea, rave, when told that Christ Jesus promises tribulation and
suffering. -to all His servants and disciples. ,From a stony,
heart and an embittered mind they say: Must one always suffer?
Must one always. be ,persecuted? This is a hard .saying; who
can hear it? O God, how is the sweet honey changed into gall,
and the clear wine into bitter water,! Alas!how have they come
to loathe that precious, heavenly bread, and how has the
eternal medicine, by which every soul must be healed, become a
deadly poison to them!And how do men who will not believe the
Word of God, nor receive the holy doctrine, of our Lord Jesus
Christ, condemn the comforting Gospel, which has been sent us
from heaven through the Holy Ghost, and sealed by Christ with
His own precious blood; but if a lying prophet comes, a
messenger prophesying of temporal peace and happiness, though
it never comes to pass, he is heard, while the good Lord Jesus
Christ, who has promised us the eternal peace of His heavenly
kingdom, can not ,obtain ahearing; so that it is as Christ said
to the Pharisees, "I am come in my Father's name, and ye receive
me not: if another shall come in his own name, him ye will
receive." John 5:43. Yea, many now do as did the rebellious and
unbelieving Israelites, who forsook God the Lord, who had
delivered them out of Egypt, and desired other gods for leaders
and protectors. Num. 14:2; Ex. 32:1; Acts 7:39. Thus also now
many Christians forsake Jesus, who has freed them from the
power and tyranny of Satan, and. delivered them from the jaws
of, the lions, who devoured them; yea, had hastened with them
in the way to eternal damnation, utterly to destroy them.-Then
Christ delivered them, and placed them again in the way of
eternal salvation. John 1:29. Many now forsake the good
Shepherd, who spared not. His life for our sakes, but
delivered.it unto death, because of the great love which He had
to us; and trust in men, of whom the prophet says that their
assistance availeth not, and they cannot help; for their breath
must go forth and return to the earth, and the thoughts of all
them that put their trust in men and follow false prophets, who
delight in unrighteousness shall perish. Hence all pious
Christians must follow no other than Christ Jesus, who, as
Peter says, suffered for us, leaving us an example, that we
should follow His steps. I Peter 2:21. The same is declared
also by Paul, with these words, "Let us lay aside all guile and hypocrisy, and the besetting
sin, and let us run with patience the race that is set before
us, looking unto Jesus the Author and Finisher of our faith;
who for the joy that was set before him; endured the cross,
despising the shame, and is set down at the right hand of the
throne of God, " Heb. 12:1, 2; Mark 16:19. In these words of the
apostles we may perceive, that we are to follow Jesus Christ,
and look to Him as the Captain of the faith, the Bishop and
Shepherd of our souls, yea, the good Lord and Master, who has
given an example to all His servants and disciples, that they
must suffer even as He suffered. Heb. 2:10; John 10:11; I Peter
2:25: But, O God, how much Christ had to suffer! He who was
Lord of heaven and earth became so poor for our sakes, that He
had not where to rest, or lay His head</p>

<p>when He was in the. form of God, He humbled Himself, and
took upon Him the form of a servant (Phil. 2:6, 7; John 13:5),
that He might serve us, and gave His life for our redemption;
yea, though He was the eternal wisdom of the Father, who
upholds all things by the word of His power, He had
nevertheless to hear. the Pharisees call Him a flatterer and
deceiver of the people, a sinner, yea, a demoniac and madman,
and many other abominable blasphemies, reproaches and
mockeries; in short, though He was the only begotten Son of
God, the Almighty Father, yet He was counted a malefactor, and
had to die the most bitter death, so that Isaiah could well say
of Him, "He hath no form nor comeliness; and when we shall see
him, there is no beauty that we should desire him. He is
 </p>

</div><div id="460"> 

<p>despised and rejected of men; a man of sorrows, and acquainted
with grief: and we hid as it were our faces from him; he was
despised, and we esteemed him not. Surely he hath borne our
grief s, and carried our sorrows: yet we did esteem him
stricken, smitten of God, and afflicted. But he was wounded for
our transgressions, he was bruised for our iniquities." Isa.
53:2-5. Hence He could justly say, "I restored that which I took not away. For, for my friends'  sake I have suffered pain; shame hath covered my face. I am
become a stranger unto my brethren, and an alien unto my
mother's children. And I looked for some to take pity, but
there was none; and for comforters, but I found none. They gave
me also gall for my meat; and in my thirst they gave me vinegar
to drink. All they that see me, laugh me to scorn: they shoot
out the lip, they shake the head. They gaped upon me with their
mouths, as a ravening and roaring lion. I am poured out like
water, and all my bones are out of joint: my heart is like wax;
it is melted in the midst of my bowels. My strength is dried up
like a potsherd.; and my tongue cleaveth to my jaws; and thou
hast brought me into the dust of death. For dogs have compassed
me: the assembly of the wicked have enclosed me: they pierced
my hands and my feet. I may tell all my bones: they look and
stare upon me. They part my garments among them, and cast lots
upon my vesture." Ps. 69:4, 7, 8, 20, 21; 22:7, 13-18; Matthew
27:34; Matt. 15:23; John 19:23. Yea, as He says through the
prophet, "I am a worm, and no man; a reproach of men, and
despised of the people." Ps. 22:6. Yea, my beloved brethren,
God the heavenly Father laid the chastisement of our peace upon
Him; for by His stripes we are healed. All we went astray, as
sheep that have no shepherd; we have turned everyone to his own
way; but the Lord laid on Him the iniquity of us all."He was
oppressed, and he was afflicted, yet he opened not his mouth:
he is brought as a lamb to the slaughter, and as a sheep before
her shearers is dumb, so he opened not his mouth." I Peter
2:24, 25; Isaiah 53:5-7; Acts 8:32.</p>

<p>Are you pious Christians? Then consider what Christ Jesus
suffered for us poor sinners; the Lord for His servants, the
Master for His disciples, the Shepherd for H'is sheep, yea, God
for men. I Peter 4:1; John 10:11; Ezek. 34:23. O deep humility
of the Master, that He would serve His disciples, and give
Himself unto death for theml John 13:5. O great grace of the
Lord, that He would suffer so much for His servants! O infinite
righteousness of the Shepherd, who would give His life for His
sheep I John 10:11; 17:9. O unspeakable love of God to us poor
mortals, that He would redeem us by His own precious blood:
This every Christian should at all times remember, and feel
grateful to Jesus Christ for these benefits, not only with
words but also with works. But alas! some have gone so far,
that they can indeed talk of Christ, that He suffered and
atoned for us, and are desirous alsoof partaking of the
redemption purchased for us with the blood of Christ; but they
never once think of suffering with Christ Jesus, though they
nevertheless hope to be .glorified with Him. But it is a
faithful saying, says Paul, that if we are dead with Christ, we
shall also live with Him; if we suffer with Him, we shall also
rejoice with Him. forever; if we deny Him, He also will deny
us. II Tim. 2:11, 12; Rom. 6:23; Luke 12:9. Let all apostate
Christians, who return to the Roman Babylon, from which they
had separated, and make friendship with the whore whom they had
hated bear this in mind. What shall we say to such unstable
persons? How can men who once knew the truth be so blinded as
to depart from Christ Jesus their only Saviour, and return to
the infamous accursed whore of Babylon, the mother of all
unrighteousness, and queen of all the children of unbelief and
cursing, who has become their comfort and protection, yea,
their idol. Woe unto such perverse men, who depart from
righteousness, from light to darkness, from life to death, and
go from Jesus Christ to antichrist, seeking consolation from
Satan, and not in God. Woe unto such fearful ones, who fear
those who can kill only the body, more than God, the Almighty
Lord, who can cast both body and soul into eternal damnation.
Revelation 21:8; Matt. 10:28; Luke 12:4, 5. Woe unto such, that
they were ever born unless they remarkably amend their ways and
go out of Babylon; for the Scripture says not in vain, "Go ye
out of the midst of Babylon, my people, and touch not the
unclean thing, that ye be not partakers of her plagues, or
sins." Isa. 52:11; II Cor. 6:17; Revelation 18:4. These are the
clear words of the Lord; Who can blot them out? Who can endure
the stings of a guilty conscience? let him begin as he may, he
will find it a hard undertaking, and shall not be successful in
it. Acts 9:5; 5:5.</p>

<p>Here also no excuse will avail, as is clearly shown in the
parable of the wicked servant, who, out of fear, had buried his
Lord's pound into the earth, but was not heard when he wanted
to excuse himself to his lord. Matt. 25:26; Luke 19:22. By this
wicked servant we understand all the fearful, who are not
fruitful in the knowledge of our Lord Jesus Christ, and relish
and seek all earthly things more than heavenly things. They may
excuse themselves as ever they will, their excuse shall not
avail, but eternal damnation will be their recompense; for
every tree which does not bring forth good fruit, shall be hewn
down, and cast into the fire. There must be fruits; leaves
alone will not avail. Matt. 21:19. Christ is our example; He
practiced and taught. He taught His disciples to suffer and
endure, for He Himself suffered and endured; hence Paul teaches
us to look unto Christ Jesus, saying, "Consider him (Christ
Jesus), ye Christians, that endured such contradiction of
sinners against himself; lest ye be wearied, and faint in your
minds. Ye have not yet resisted unto blood, striving against
sin. And ye have forgotten the exhortation which</p>

</div><div id="461"> 

<p>speaketh unto you as unto children, My son, despise not thou
the chastening of the Lord, nor faint when thou art rebuked of
him: for whom the Lord loveth he chasteneth, and scourgeth
every son whom he receiveth. If ye endure chastening, God
dealeth with you as with sons; for what son is he whom the
father chasteneth not? But if ye be without chastisement,
whereof all are partakers, then are ye bastards, and not sons.
Furthermore we have had fathers of our flesh which corrected
us, and we gave them reverence: shall we not much rather be in
subjection to the Father of spirits, and live? For they verily
for a few days chastened us after their own pleasure; but he
for our profit, that we might be partakers of his holiness."
Heb. 12:3-10; Prov. 3:11; Rev. 3:19.</p>

<p>By these words the apostle indicates to us, how necessary
and profitable chastisement is for us, yea, so necessary and
profitable that we can not be children of God unless we are
chastened by our God and heavenly Father, as is clearly
declared in these words, "For what son is he whom the father
chasteneth not? But if ye be without chastisement, whereof all
are partakers, then are ye bastards and not sons." With this
accord the words of Judith, namely: that Abraham was tried by
many tribulations, and became the friend of God; so also Isaac,
Jacob, Moses, and all that pleased God were found faithful
through many tribulations. Judith 8:26. But those who did not
receive their trial in the fear of the Lord, and showed their
impatience and the evil of their murmurings against the Lord,
were destroyed by the destroyer, and killed by the serpents. I
Cor. 10:6; N um. 21:6. Therefore, as gladly as we have God for
our Father, so readily must we receive the chastisement of our
heavenly Father; and as unwillingly as we would be counted
bastards by God, so unwillingly must we also be to be without
chastisement and correction, and so willing must we also be to
be tried by tribulation. In short, as much as we love God and
the salvation of our souls, and as much as we fear the
punishment of God, so cheerfully must we receive all sufferings
imposed upon us by God,- and remember that Christ says, "He that
taketh not his cross, and followeth after me, cannot be my
disciple." Matt. 10:38; 16:24; Mark 8:54; Luke 9:23. Also:
Whosoever will save his life shall lose it; but whosoever loses
his life in this world, for the Gospel's sake, shall save it
forever. Where now are the false Christians, who do not lose
their life for Christ's sake, and still think to keep it in
eternity? Yea, so Saul thought that he could please the
Israelites, and still remain the friend of God; but God
rejected him for his double-mindedness. I Sam. 15:26. Thus they
may also think to save their temporal life, and still obtain
eternal life; but they shall find themselves disappointed in
their hope. O Lord God, how can men be so blinded as to so love
this transient life, seeing they know neither the day nor hour
when they must die; even as the apostle James says that this
life is but a vapor, which appears for a little time, and then
vanishes away. Jesus Sirach also says that our life, compared
wit the days of eternity, is as dust or as a grain o sand to
all the sand of the sea, or as a drop of water unto all the
water of the sea. What then i man 1 and what is his beauty? or
what are his possessions on which he would rely?</p>

<p>Since then our life is so uncertain and brief, i is a
lamentable matter, that men take so muc care for it, and bestow
so little thought upon the eternal life. This is partly owing
to false teacher and deceitful laborers, the adversaries of
Chris and His apostles, who openly teach that Christian are not
to suffer any more.</p>

<p>They shall be confounded with their people, wh prophesy lies
in the name of the Lord; they shal be punished with Zedekiah
and Ahab who shame fully sin, and seduce the Israel of God,
causin them to trust in vain things. They shall be put t shame
with the Egyptian magicians, who now resis the truth, even as
they resisted Moses. They shal be accursed with Balaam the son
of Bosor, wh with him forsake the right way, and go in crooke
paths; yea, they shall sink into hell with Dathan Korah, and
Abiram, who with them caused conten tion and offence in the
church of God, and despis the godly doctrine of Jesus Christ,
by which the awaken, the wrath of the Almighty God, and treas
ure up unto themselves the wrath of God agains the day when
Christ Jesus shall be revealed fro</p>

<p>heaven with His mighty angels, in flaming fire taking
vengeance on them that knew not God, an obeyed not the Gospel
of our Lord Jesus Chris (Rom. 2:5; Matt. 25:31; II Peter 3:4;
II Thess 1:7-10); who shall suffer pain and everlastin
destruction from the presence of the Lord, whet He shall come
to be glorified in His glory, an glorified in all them that
believe in Him. Isa. 2:10 Wisd. 5:2.</p>

<p>Now, who are these unbelievers, who do not be lieve the
Gospel of Jesus Christ, and shall therefor suffer everlasting
pain? They are those who no do not observe the commandments of
Jesus Chris and will not suffer for the name of God, or confes
the truth according to the instruction of the Gospel hence
Christ shall also not confess them, or kno them before His
Father, and before His angel with whom He shall come from
heaven, to punis such unfaithful and fearful servants, and to
glori fy the faithful and valiant soldiers, who have com out of
great tribulation, and have washed and puri fied their robes in
the blood of the Lamb. Mat 10:33; Mark 8:38; Luke 9:26; II Tim.
2:12 Matt. 25:31; Rev. 7:14. Therefore are they befor the
throne of God, and serve Him day and night i His temple: and He
that sitteth on the throne sha dwell among them. They shall
hunger no mor neither thirst any more; neither shall the su
tighten them, nor any heat. For the Lamb whic is in the midst
of the throne shall feed them, an shall lead them unto living
fountains of water and God shall wipe away all tears from their
eyes.</p>

</div><div id="462"> 

<p>Rev. 7:15-17; Isa. 49:10. The prophet Esdras says, "I Esdras
saw upon the mount Sion a great people, whom I could not
number, and they all praised the Lord with songs. And in the
midst of them there was a young man of high stature, taller
than all the rest, and upon every one of their heads he set
crowns, and was more exalted; which I marveled at greatly. So I
asked the angel, and said, Sir, What are these? He answered and
said unto me, These be they that have put off the mortal
clothing, and put on the immortal, and have confessed the name
of God: now are they crowned, and receive palms. Then said I
unto the angels, What young person is it that crowneth them,
and giveth them palms into their hands? So he answered and said
unto me, It is the Son of God, whom they have confessed in the
world. Then began I greatly to commend them that stood so
stiffly for the name of the Lord." II Esdras 2:42-47; Matt.
16:16; 10:32; Mark 8:29.</p>

<p>O what joy and glory are prepared for all pious Christians 1
Who now is so faint hearted and fearful, as to be unwilling to
suffer a little for such joy and glory? It is indeed true, that
suffering and tribulation are hard for the flesh; but we must
remember the words of Paul, "Now no chastening for the present
seemeth to be joyous, but grievous; nevertheless, afterward it
yieldeth the peaceable fruit of righteousness unto them which
are exercised thereby." Heb. 12:11. Christ says the same to His
apostles, "Verily, verily, I say unto you, That ye shall weep
and lament, but the world shall rejoice; and ye shall be
sorrowful, but your sorrow shall be turned into joy. A woman
when she is in travail hath sorrow, because her hour is come:
but as soon as she is delivered of the child, she remembereth
no more the anguish, for joy that a man is born into the world.
And ye now therefore have sorrow; but I will see you again, and
your heart shall rejoice, and your joy no man taketh from you."
John 16:20-22; Isa 26:17.</p>

<p>Behold, all ye believers, who now suffer tribulation,
anguish and persecution for the truth, for a little season,
consider these words, and take comfort: do not let it terrify
or grieve you, and though tribulation is not pleasing to the
flesh, remember that for a little sorrow you shall receive
eternal joy; yea, remember that it is written, "The souls of the
righteous are in the hand of God, and there shall no torment
touch them. In the sight of the unwise they seem to die; and
their departure is taken for misery, and their going from. us
to be utter destruction: but they are in peace. For though they
be punished in the sight of men, yet is their hope full of
immortality, and having been a little chastised they shall be
greatly rewarded</p>

<p>for God proved them, and found them worthy for himself. As
gold in the furnace hath he tried them, and received them as a
burnt offering. And in the time of their visitation, they shall
shine, and run to and fro like sparks among the stubble. They
shall judge the nations and have dominion overthe people, and
their lord shall reign forever. They that put their trust in
him shall understand the truth: and such as be faithful in love
shall abide with him: for grace and mercy is to his saints.'."
Wisd. 3:1-9; Deut. 33:3; Phil. 1:21; Wisd. 5:1; I Peter 1:7;
Matt. 13:43; I Cor. 6:2. Oh, what beautiful promises are these
for all that are persecuted for the truth; and how comforting
are the promises made to us by Christ in the Gospel, namely
that we are blessed when we mourn, for we shall be comforted;
and that we are blessed when we are persecuted for
righteousness' sake, for the kingdom of heaven is ours; in
short, that we are blessed when men shall despise and revile
us, and say all manner of evil against us falsely, for Christ
Jesus' sake; then shall we rejoice and be exceeding glad: for
great is our reward in heaven. Matt. 5:4, 10-12; Luke 6:22; I
Peter 2:20. Yea, great is our reward, as Isaiah tells us, "that
eye hath not seen, nor ear heard, neither have entered into the
heart of man, the things which God hath prepared for them that
love him." Isa. 64:4; I Cor. 2:9. And the prophet David says, "O
Lord, how great is thy goodness, which thou hast laid up for
them that fear thee; which thou hast wrought for them that
trust in thee before the sons of men!" Ps. 31:19.</p>

<p>But how few now labor for this great glory? It is as
represented in the parable of the Lord, where it is said that
the householder prepared a supper to which he invited many, for
all things were ready. But one had bought a farm, and had to go
and see it. Another had bought five yoke of oxen, which he must
needs go to prove. Another had married a wife, and therefore
could not come. But when the householder heard of this, he was
wroth, and said that none of those who would not come should
taste of his supper. Matt. 22:2; Luke 14:16; Revelation 19:7.
Oh, what severe judgment and sentence is uttered against all
those who will not come, despising the call of the Lord, and
loving anything rather than God; that is, those who for father,
mother, brother, sister, wife, child, wealth, poverty, praise,
or reproach, forsake God, and do not obey His voice; yea, who
do not count all earthly things and excellence, but dung, that
they may win Jesus Christ, even as Paul did, and also the
Hebrews of whom the apostle says that they took joyfully the
spoiling of their goods, knowing that they had in heaven a
better and enduring substance. Matthew 10:37; Phil. 3:8; Heb.
10:35. But, O God, how little do men now regard heavenly
things. Oh, how little do they think, what difference there
will be between the righteous and the wicked. Yea, there will
be such a difference as the Lord has declared through
Isaiah."Behold, my servants shall eat but ye shall be hungry;
behold, my servants shall drink, but ye shall be thirsty;
behold, my servants shall rejoice, but ye shall be ashamed;
behold, my servants shall sing for joy of heart, but ye shall
cry for sorrow of heart, and shall howl for vexation of
spirit." Isa. 65:13. 14. Hence Christ says in the Gospel:</p>

</div><div id="463"> 
<p>there shall be weeping and gnashing of teeth; when ye shall
see Abraham, and Isaac, and Jacob; and all the prophets, in the
kingdom of God, and you yourselves thrust out." Luke 13:28. Oh,
how glad shall the pious Christians then be, who fight
valiantly for the name of Christ, and through Him overcome.
Yea, how glad, say we, will they be, when they shall receive
the beautiful promise of which the Spirit of God says, "To him
that over cometh will I give to eat of the tree of life, which
is in the midst of the paradise of God. Fear none of. those
things which thou shalt suffer; behold, the devil shall cast
some of you into prison, that ye may be tried; and ye shall
have tribulation ten days: be thou faithful unto death, and I
will give thee a crown of life. To him that overcometh, will I
give to eat of the hidden manna; and will give him a white
stone, and in the stone a new name written, which no man
knoweth saving he that receiveth it. And he that overcometh and
keepeth my words unto the end, to him will I give power over
the nations and he shall rule them with a rod of iron; as the vessels of
a potter shall they be broken to shivers even as I received of my Father. And I will give him the
morning star. He that overcometh, the same shall be clothed in
white raiment; and I will not blot out his name out of the book
of life, but I will confess his name before my Father, and
before his angels. Because thou hast kept the word of my
patience, I also will keep thee from the hour of temptation,
which shall come upon all the world, to try them that dwell
upon the earth. Behold, I come quickly: hold that fast which
thou hast, that no man take thy crown. Him that overcometh will
I make a pillar in the temple of my God, and he shall go no
more out: and I will write upon him the name of my God; and the
name of the city of my God, which is New Jerusalem, which
cometh down out of heaven from my God: and I will write upon
him my new name. As many as I love, I will rebuke and chasten;
even as a father the son in whom he delighteth: be zealous
therefore, and repent. Behold, I stand at the door, and knock;
if any man hear my voice, and open the door, I will come in to
him, and will sup with him, and he with me. To him that
overcometh will I grant to sit with me in my throne, even as I
also overcome, and am set down with my Father in his throne."
Rev. 2:7, 10, 17, 26-28; 3:5, 10-12, 1921; Prov. 3:12. Yea, my
beloved brethren, that -they shall shine as the sun in the
kingdom of their Father, and possess all things.</p>

<p>Oh, how sorrowful will the persecutors of the Christians be,
when the righteous God will mete to them with the same measure
with which they measured to the Christians. Where shall
murderous Cain then hide himself, when the sorrowful and
innocent blood of righteous Abel shall cry unto God for
vengeance against him? Where shall the BabyIonian whore, who
now sits in her pleasure house and pomp, and has become drunken
with the blood of His saints, and of the martyrs of Christ
Jesus, escape the punishment of God, when the Lord willavenge
the blood of His saints and witnesses, and require it at her
hands? Which shall undoubtedly come to pass, as has been said
through the prophet, "Behold, the innocent and righteous blood crieth unto me,
and the souls of the just complain continually. And therefore,
saith the Lord, I will surely avenge them, and receive unto me
all the innocent blood from among them, " II Esd. 15:8; 9.
Christ says, "Shall not the God avenge his own elect, which cry
day and night unto him, though he bear long with them? I tell
you that he will avenge them speedily." Luke 18:7, 8. Oh, how
fearful will the punishment be, with which the Almighty God
will avenge all the blood of His saints! How dearly had
tyrannous Pharaoh to pay for the blood, of the innocent
children, which he had shed! Ex. 1:22; 14:28. How severely was
Amalek punished, because he had shed the innocent blood of the
Israelites! I Sam. 15:33. The bloodthirsty Jezebel was thrown
into the field, so that the dogs licked her blood, because she
had shed innocent blood. II Kings 9:33. O Jerusalem, thou that
killest the prophets that are sent to thee, and stonest the
Levites, thou art therefore trodden down by the Gentiles, and
art become a sport unto all nations! Thus shall God punish
those who now shed innocent blood, and it shall come to pass as
is written in the book' of Wisdom, "Then shall the righteous man
stand in great boldness before the face of such as have
afflicted him, and made no account of his' labors. When they
see it, they shall be troubled with terrible fear, and shall be
amazed at the strangeness of his salvation, so far beyond all
that they looked for. And they repenting and groaning for
anguish of spirit shall say within themselves: This was he;
whom we had sometimes in derision, and a proverb of reproach:
we fools accounted his life madness, and his end to be without
honor: How is he numbered among the children of God, and his
lot is among the saints! Therefore have 'we erred from the way
of truth, and the light of righteousness bath not shined unto
us, and the sun of righteousness rose not upon us. We wearied
ourselves in the way of wickedness and destruction: yea, we
have gone through deserts, where they lay no way, but as for
the way of the Lord, we have not known it. What hath pride
profited us? or what good hath riches with our vaunting brought
us?" Wisd. 5:1-8.</p>

<p>All these things shall they say; who are in hell, having
sinned, "For the hope of the ungodly is like dust that is blown
away with the wind; like a thin froth that is driven away with
the storm; like as the smoke which is dispersed here and there
with the tempest, and passeth away as the remembrance of a
guest that tarrieth but a day. But the righteous live forever
more; their reward also is with the Lord, and the care of them
is with the Most High. Therefore shall they receive a glorious
kingdom, and a beautiful crown from the Lord's hand: for with
his right hand shall he sever them, and with his arm shall he
protect them." Wisd. 5:14-16. O</p>

</div><div id="464"> 

<p>unfathomable grace of the Almighty,God ! O unspeakable,
love of the heavenly Father, how abounding is Thy grace, and
how infinite is Thy goodness, that Thou hast prepared such
glory for Thine elect? Who. can thank Thee aright for all the
benefits which Thou hast so richly shown us, and.dost still
daily show? Blessed be Thy name forever. Therefore we pray, and
admonish- all pious Christians, all who love their .salvation,
to deny themselves, to take up their cross, and to follow
Christ Jesus, and thus to- do the will of God, that we may
receive the promise. Let no one be afraid of or terrified by
the ungodly, tyrants; but let each do as Matthias taught his
sons, saying, "Now, therefore, my sons, be ye zealous for the law, and
give your lives for the covenant of your fathers. Call to
remembrance what acts our fathers did in their time; so shall
ye receive great honor and an everlasting name. Fear not then
the words of a sinful man: for his glory shall be dung and
worms. Today he shall be lifted up, and tomorrow he shall not
be found, because he is returned into his dust, and his thought
is come to nothing. Wherefore, ye my sons, be valiant, and show
yourselves men in behalf of, the law; for by it shall ye obtain
glory." I Macc. 2:50, 51, 62-64.</p>

<p>O ye pious Christians, take these words of God to heart, and
arm yourselves therewith, to do battle for righteousness, even
unto death, and God shall fight for you and subdue your
enemies."And fear not them who are able to kill the body, and
after that, have no more that they can do; but fear the
Almighty God, the righteous Lord and ,judge; who is able to
cast soul and body into eternal perdition, " Matt. 10:28; Luke
12:4, 5. Him alone let us fear, and walk in His ways, serving
Him in holiness .and righteousness all the days of our life;
yea, suffering death for His name, that we may say with Paul, "I
have, fought a good fight, I.have finished my course, I ave
kept the faith: henceforth there is laid up for me a crown of
righteousness, which the Lord Christ shall give me." II Tim.
4:7, 8. May God, the Father of mercy, and the God of all
comfort, by whom it is. given unto us, -not only, to believe on
Him, but also to suffer for His nae, strengthen, confirm and
establish us with His Holy Spirit, that we may not become weary
of suffering for the truth, but continue steadfast unto the
end, and rejoice with all the pious and true saints, when we
are reviled and persecuted for the name of Christ Jesus. This
grant us the Almighty Father, through Jesus Christ His only
begotten Son,. our Saviour, unto whom be glory, majesty,
blessing, the kingdom, and everlasting dominion, Amen.</p>

<p>Be manful, strong and very courageous, to keep and do all
things, even the words and the law of God. Depart not
therefrom, neither to the right nor to the left; add not
thereto, nor take away therefrom, that you may act wisely.
Whithersoever you go, be not terrified, and fear not, for the
Lord your God is with you, when you pass through the waters, or
into the fire; and though through hypocrisy or dissimulation
you may now evade pain and punishment, you can neither alive
nor dead escape the power of Almighty God. I Pet. 3:14; II
Macc. 6:26.</p>

<p>Therefore let us forsake all that is in this world, for it
lieth in wickedness.; and let each take up his cross, and
follow Jesus Christ; for He is nigh unto and with all those who
are in distress, and will deliver them, and bring them to
honor, if they are of a broken heart, and contrite spirit. Oh,
what great comfort is it, to have such a powerful and faithful
companion, and what great honor is it, that He Himself will so
kindly aid us 1 But we must know that our Lord Christ Jesus is
our Companion and Helper only at His own proper time, according
to the counsel of the divine will and pleasure, in which He has
ordered everything after one measure and weight; for even as He
is the Head of the holy church, and beholds her sufferings, so
He has also appointed the number, measure, and weight, how far
He will permit the wicked .to go, how far they shall reach, and
not longer nor farther, even as the Babylonian captivity should
continue seventy years. Jer. 29:10. Yea, when, the distress, is
at its height, and men think that God has utterly forsaken and
forgotten them, at this very time the help of God is nearest
them; yea, properly speaking, the Lord comforts before and in
the midst of all affliction, for the Christian has in his heart
the Spirit of God, the fountain of living water, by which he is
always refreshed, comforted,. rejoiced, and made glad. John
4:10; 7:37; II Cor: 7:7. Yea, the more sufferings increase, the
greater the help and aid we receive;"for God will not suffer us
to be tempted above that we are able; but will with the
temptation also make a way to escape, that we may be able to
bear it." 1 Cor. 10:13. Behold, in these words Paul tells us
for our great consolation, that God will not suffer us to be
assailed or tempted above that we are able to bear; for if the
sufferings of Christ abound in us, our consolation also abounds
by Jesus Christ our Lord. II Cor. 1.;5.</p>

<p>As a captain makes his soldiers valiant by encouraging words
and promises, how then should not the true and faithful God
make us manful and strong by His divine Word of the Gospel,
which is the power of God unto salvation to everyone that
believeth. Rom. 1:16. Yea, the righteous God does not stop at
mere words, but is present with us with His Spirit, who, as an
-earnest, assures our hearts of His divine grace and help, and
strengthens our weakness. Eph. 1:13; Gal. 4:6; Rom. 8:23; II
Cor. 1:22. For if the devil, by his lying spirit, so animates
men, that they are- perfectly willing to commit wickedness,
though it cost their life; why should not the grace of God, by,
His true Spirit, make us equally ready unto every good work, in
all distresses and tribulations? This the gracious God also
does, not only through His Spirit, but also through angels,
stars, elements, beasts, men, and all manner of creatures. For
-instance, Elisha said to his servant, "Fear not: for, they that
~be with</p>

</div><div id="465"> 

<p>us are more than they that come against us." II Kings 6:16.
The Red Sea and Jordan divided, so that the children of Israel
passed through them dry-shod. The sun and the moon stood still
for Joshua at the time when he defeated the five kings. Elijah
was miraculously fed by the ravens. The children of Israel were
delivered by the hand of a woman from their wicked enemies.
Judith 14</p>

<p>18. God the Lord generally comforts men through their
fellows: for all the saints and Christians on earth have
fellowship with one another, in adversity as well as in
prosperity; for when one suffers pain and grief, he suffers it
not alone, but Christ and all Christians suffer it with him.
For He says in the Gospel: Ye have fed, clothed, entertained,
and comforted me. And all Christians are one body, one bread,
one drink in the Lord Christ Jesus. Acts 9:4; Matt. 25:35; I
Cor. 10:17.</p>

<p>Now if Christ Jesus our Lord frequently spent whole nights
in prayer, and also prayed in the garden before His death, we
should also pray without ceasing, especially in our distress,
to the Father of lights, from whom alone is every good and
perfect gift, that He may forgive our sins, for the death of
His clear Son, who was delivered for our offenses, and was
raised for our justification. Matt. 14:23; Luke 6:12; Matt.
26:36; Mark 14:32; Luke 22:41; I Thess. 5:17; Jas. 1:17; Rom.
4:25.</p>

<p>Hence we are to pray that He would deliver, or punish us,
not according to our judgment, but according to His divine
wisdom, lest we utterly perish. Yea, we must give praise and
thanks to God also in our tribulation, that He do not forget
us, but chasten us according to His fatherly mercy, and
graciously help us to bear every burden, even as Paul thanked
God in his affliction, saying, "Blessed be God, the Father of mercies and the God of all
comfort; who comforteth us in all our tribulation. Amen." I
Cor. 1:3, 4.</p>

<h2>PRAYER</h2> 

<p>Merciful Father; look upon me with eyes of compassion, as
Thou didst look upon the prodigal son; for to Thee only, O
Father, belongs praise and honor, but unto us nothing but shame
before Thy face; hepce, good Father, I commit soul and body
into The divine and gracious keeping: guide me, through Jesus
Christ Thy dear Son, into all things that are well pleasing to
Thy divine Spirit; and bring to folly and madness the counsel
of the ungodly, and preserve us by Thy divine Word now and
forever. Amen.</p>

<p>Composed by WALTER OF STOELWIJCK.<br />
________________</p>

<h1>DIRK PIETERS KROOD, PIETER TRIJNES, CLASS RODERS, PIETER CLASS JANS, OF WORMER, IN WATERLANDT</h1>

<p>The Word of God having, according to His will, been
proclaimed in many and various countries, and attested and
confirmed by the blood of many Christians, it came to and was
accepted also atWormer, in North Holland, where, among others,
there were Dirk Pieters Krood, Pieter Trijnes, Claes Roders,
Pieter Claes Jans. These turned their ears away from the
papistic fables, amended their corrupt life, and, in place
thereof, through the enlightenment of the Holy Spirit,
willingly received the Word of God into their hearts, and
regulated their whole conduct according to it. I Thess. 2:13.
And even as Christ predicted, "The time cometh, that whosoever
killeth you will think that he doeth God service" (John 16:2),
so it was also very clearly manifested in the case of the
aforesaid persons; for because they lived according to the Word
of God, they were brought prisoners to Enchuysen, and being
built upon Christ, they all remained steadfast and faithful in
all this trial and severe temptation; for which reason they
were sentenced to death at said place, and offered up their
bodies as a sweet savor to the Lord, thus obtaining a glorious
crown.</p>

<p>With regard to this offering, we have not been able to
ascertain the year in which it took place.</p>

<h2>JACOB AND SELI HIS WIFE, OF WORMER, A. D.
1542</h2> 

<p>Among many others who voluntarily forsook and delivered up
their property and life for the truth of the holy Gospel, there
were also a brother at Wormer, in Waterlandt, named Jacob, and
his wife Seli. These sought and also found the pearl of great
price, which was hid in a field and for joy thereof renounced
all earthly riches, the lusts of this world, and the papal
superstitions, which militate against God, and sought to order
and regulate their whole life according to this precious
treasure of the divine Word. Thus it came to pass, that the
envious papists, in order to stop this, apprehended them, and
brought them to Amsterdam, where they had to suffer much for
the truth. And as they could by no temptation be moved from it,
but unto death adhered to Christ and His holy Word, they were
condemned to death at said place, and burned, suffering it with
great steadfastness. Thus they delivered their bodies up to the
fire, and commended their souls into the hands of God, and are
now waiting under the altar, until the number of their fellow
brethren will be fulfilled.</p>

<h2>JAN EGTWERCKEN, CLASS MELISS, AECHT MELISS,
WILLIAM HER HUSBAND, HEYNE WALINGS,
TRIJN AMKERS, CORNELIS LUYTS, CLASS
DIRKS, CLASS CLAESS, AND JONKER
DIRK GERRITS VAN DEN BUSCH,
NEAR KROMMENIERSDIJCK,
A. D. 1542</h2> 

<p>As the Word of God was proclaimed in many places, and
received with great thankfulness by many, it was also heard,
believed and accepted in Waterlandt, on Krommeniersdijck. It
wrought so effectually, that some were by it drawn away from
their sinful life and dumb idols, and converted to the true and
living God; which, among others, ap-</p>

</div><div id="466"> 

<p>peared in the case of Jan Egtwercken, Claes Meliss, Aecht
Meliss, William her husband, Heyne Walings, Trijn Amkers,
Cornelis Luyts, Ciaes Dirks, Claes Claess, and Jonker Dirk
Gerrits van den Busch. These together separated from the pope
and his adherents, and put themselves under the faithful
Shepherd Christ Jesus, inclining their ears to His heavenly
voice, and preparing their bodies for His service. Rev. 18:4;
II Cor. 6:17; John 10:4; 15:20. And as Christ predicted the
cross and persecution to His faithful followers, so the
abovementioned persons also richly experienced it; for they
were apprehended and tormented by the bloodthirsty papists,
and, after suffering many assaults, put to death, all of which
they suffered in patience for the name of Jesus, thus obtaining
the crown of life; and are now waiting for the revelation of
Jesus, their Saviour for their full and eternal reward.</p>

<h2>BALTHASAR HUBMOR, AND HIS WIFE</h2> 

<p>At the time of Zwinglius there was also one Balthasar Hubmor
of Friedberg, whom the papists called a doctor of the Holy
Scriptures, a learned and eloquent man. He was first a teacher
and preacher at Ingolstadt, and subsequently came to Reinsburg,
where he preached mightily against the Jews and their usury.
Through the enlightenment of the Holy Spirit, the abomination
of popery was made manifest to him, in consequence of which he,
according to the counsel of God, separated therefrom.
Subsequently he rejected, together with other errors, the
self-invented infant baptism, and taught with all his might the
baptism of believers, as commanded by Christ. But as the eyes
of this dark world can not bear the clear light of the holy
Gospel, and since in this way their false faith and evil works
are testified against, the above-mentioned Balthasar Hubmor,
together with many others, was hated and persecuted by the
world. After many temptations, expulsions and imprisonments, he
came to Nichlasburg, in Moravia. Afterwards they apprehended
him and his wife, and brought them to Vienna, in Austria,
where, after manifold trials and long imprisonment, he was
burned to ashes, suffering it with great steadfastness, and his
wife drowned; and thus both steadfastly confirmed with their
death the faith which they had received from God. Eph. 2:8.</p>

<p class="c8">Read also Sebastian Franck, on the Roman
Heretics, letter B.</p>

<p>NOTE.This Balthasar Hubmor published a small book, in which
he complains of Zwinglius and his followers. He writes that
they brought about, that at one time twenty persons, men,
pregnant women, widows, and young girls were miserably cast
into a dark tower, and this sentence passed upon them, that
they should never more, in their lifetime, see either sun or
moon, and conclude their last days on bread and water; so that
they all,. deadand alive, should remain and decay together in
the dark tower, until none should be left alive.</p>

<p>Thus some did not taste a morsel of bread for three days in
order that the others might have something wherewith to sustain
their lives., "O God," he further writes,"what a terrible, severe, and
rigorous sentence against pious Christian people, of whom none
could say any evil thing, only that they, according to the
command of Christ, had received water baptism!"</p>

<p>O, sad <i>def</i>ormation, we say, of the so-called
Reformed! May the Lord forgive them and be gracious to their
blindly zealous souls. See com<i>plaint o f Balthasar Hubinor,
against Zwinglius,</i> throughout; also, the <i>Preface to the
of erboeck,</i> A. D. 1615, <i>letter I., etc.,</i> also,
<i>Chron. van den Ondergdng, etc.,</i> p. 1031, col. 2.</p>

<h2>LEONARD BERNKOP, A. D. 1542</h2> 

<p>In the year 1542, Brother Leonard Bernkop was apprehended
for the faith, at Salzburg. Much was tried to induce him to
apostatize, but as he steadfastly persevered in the narrow way
of the truth of God, and there was no hope that he would
apostatize; they condemned him to death, led him out to the
place of execution, and built a fire close to him, at which
they immediately roasted him; but he adhered firmly to the
Lord, and said to the bloodhounds and executioners, "This side
is roasted enough; turn me around, and scorch and roast also
the other; for through the power of God this suffering is
insignificant in comparison with the eternal." Rom. 8:18. Thus
he gained the victory over the beast and his image, over the
abomination of desolation and his mark. Rev. 15:2. Rather than
receive his mark, or do aught which was contrary to God His
heavenly Father, he, like the seven valiant and God-fearing
sons (II Macc. 7), gave his body to be roasted and executed by
fire, which could in no wise separate him from the love of God
(Rom. 8:39), hence he shall also have in his hands the harp of
God, and, together with all conquerors in the faith, who have
come out of great tribulation, shall have his mouth filled with
laughter, and his tongue with praise, and shall sing the new
song with the servants of God, and the song of the Lamb, yea,
he shall forever behold the Almighty God. Rev. 15:2; 7:14;
14:3. I Cor. 13:12.</p>

<h2>HANS HUBER, A. D. 1542</h2> 

<p>In this year, Brother Hans Huber, or Schumacher, was
imprisoned at Waserburg, in Bavaria, under the Count of Oting.
Much having been resorted to, to draw him from the faith, but
he remaining quite steadfast, constantly confessing and
testifying, that this wherein he stood was the true ground of
truth, and the true faith in Christ Jesus our Saviour wherefore
he also said that it was not hard for him to suffer this for
Christ's sake, and</p>

</div><div id="467"> 

<p>was sentenced to death, and led out to the place of
execution. The fire having reached his face,so that his hair
and beard were singed off, they asked him whether he would
recant, and they would let him live. He, however, would not
recant, but remained steadfast in Christ. Hence he was
immediately burnt alive, and thus faithfully paid his baptismal
vow unto the Lord Christ, and delivered up his life as a true
burntoffering for the Word of God; for he would rather lose
this temporal life, than become unfaithful to the Lord, thus
showing himself to be a steadfast lover of God.</p>

<h2>DAMIAN OF ALGAU, A. D. 1543</h2> 

<p>About this time, a brother named Damian, from Algau, was
apprehended at Ingolstadt, in order to draw him away from the
faith; but when he could in no wise be turned from it, he was
condemned to death. On his way to the place of execution, he
admonished the people, and gave answer concerning his faith, so
that a student said that one of two things was certain: that
this man had his faith either from the wicked devil, Or from
the Spirit of God, since his knowledge was so extensive,
because to all appearance he was a!!!!simple man. Someone also
admonished him, and asked him whether he would die as a pious
Christian.</p>

<p>He replied."Yes."</p>

<p>He again asked him, "What sign will you give us by which we
may know this?"</p>

<p>The brother said, "Pay attention when they burn me; the smoke
shall ascend straight to heaven."</p>

<p>This also came to pass.</p>

<p>When he was executed, the executioner. inquired the
direction of the smoke, whether he had justly executed him. The
judge answered, "You have, executed him according to your
pleasure; I did not judge." Thus this witness of God and Christ
obtained the martyrs' crown.</p>

<h2>OF A CERTAIN DECREE PUBLISHED IN ALL WEST
FRIESLAND AGAINST MENNO SIMONS, AND,
CONSEQUENTLY,. AGAINST ALL ADHERENTS OF HIS DOCTRINE,
ABOUT A. D. <i>1543</i></h2> 

<p>In <i>Chronijk van den Ondergang, page 1104,</i> col.- 2 and
3, we find these words</p>

<p>About this time the servants of antichrist caused a dreadful
decree to be proclaimed throughout all West Friesland, in which
all malefactors and murderers were promised pardon for their
crimes, the favor of the Emperor, freedom of the country, and
one hundred earl-guilders, if they would deliver vlenno Simons
into the hands of the tormentors and executioners.</p>

<p>This decree, when properly considered, indicates the extreme
wickedness and tyranny of the West Friesian Regents of those
times, against those who maintained or, at least favored the
true faith. Allmalefactors and murderers, who certainly,
according to the laws of the country, were subject to very
severe punishment, yea, to death, because of their crimes and
murders, were here accounted better than a pious Christian, who
injured no one; yea, their crimes were remitted them, and over
and above this, ,a large sum of money, according to that time,
was promised them, merely to deliver into the hands of the
criminal judges, a single person, who maintained the true
doctrine. How much may we suppose would they have promised
them, had they been able to exterminate all orthodox believers,
and, consequently, the entire church of God? We certainly have
just cause for the belief, that this came down very severely
upon the heads of the true witnesses of Jesus in general; that
is, on those that resided in these regions; in regard to which
we shall also show in the proper place, how very unmercifully
the authorities there, through the instigation of some
so-called spiritual persons, dealt with the innocent and
defenseless sheep of the flock of Christ.</p>

<h2>GEORGE LIBICH, AND URSULA.. HELLRIGLING,
A. D. <i>1544</i></h2> 

<p>About the year <i>1544,</i> George Libich was imprisoned for
the faith and the divine truth, at Filleburg, near Innsbruck,
and as this is a place of particular danger because of evil
spirits, as is well known; this brother therefore had much to
resist, and was:greatly tempted by the Evil One (I Peter 5:9),
who tempted him in visible form. He especially tried him in
various ways during the first year. Once he came to him in the
form of a maiden, and, wanted to embrace him. When the brother
knelt 'down and prayed, he put something into his way, to
prevent his praying. He, also tried to take him off with him,
but was not able to effect it. He further came to him in the
form of a youth, and also in that of a soldier; thus trying
many and various means; but when he could not accomplish
anything; he went out of the tower at the top. He also told him
much what happened among the church in the country; that he had
conversed with such brethren. and that they had told him such
and such things. But when brother George reproved him, he
finally let him be in peace, and attempted but little with him
afterward. But the enemy tempted him not only himself, but also
though his children. Thus once there came to him one wearing
the garb of a brother, and acting as one. He saluted him,
saying, "The Lord be with us, my brother," and wished him peace,
in order to seduce and deceive him by such craftiness. But
George asked him whence and from whom he, came. He
answered, "From Moravia, from the church of God." Then George
asked him what message he brought, and how matters stood there.
He told him that the church and the brethren were utterly
driven away and dispersed; that each was separated from the
rest, and that it was all over with</p>

</div><div id="468"> 

<p>them. Then George perceived that it was deception, reproved
him for his craftiness, of which he was well aware, and drove
him away by his earnest admonitions, which in all probability
he did not soon forget. Over and above all this, when all
temptation from Satan and his children was about to come to an
end, a sister named Ursula H-ellrigling, a beautiful young
woman, who had also been apprehended for the faith, was put to
him in prison, placed at the feet of George, and much of the
tine left with him. It is easy to imagine, what the devil and
his seed would have liked to see. But they [these two pious
witnesses of Christ] were valiant and God-fearing; and could by
no allurements be moved or caused to fall.</p>

<p>This George Libich knew beforehand the day and year when he
was to be released. There were several others imprisoned near
him, who were all liberated on the same day, returned to the
church, and afterwards fell asleep in the Lord.</p>

<p>Sister Ursula, who was imprisoned with him, through the
providence of God, also obtained release, and unharmed in her
faith and conscience, returned to the church, and there fell
asleep in the Lord.</p>

<h2>MARIA VAN BECKUM, AND URSULA, HER BROTHER'S WIFE, A. D. 1544</h2> 

<p>In the year 1544, there was a sister in the Lord, named
Maria van Beckum, whom her mother had driven from home on
account of her faith. This. having become known in the
Bishopric* of Utrecht, and reported to the Stadtholder, he sent
one Goossen van Raesveldt with many servants,. to apprehend
this maiden at her brother's, John van Beckum, whither she had
fled: She was compelled to rise from her bed, and accompany
them; and when she saw the great number of people who had come
on her account, she asked Ursula, her brother's wife, whether
she would go with her and keep her company. The latter
answered, "If John van Beckum is satisfied, I will gladly go
with you, and we will rejoice together in the Lord." When Maria
put this request to her brother, he consented, and Ursula went
with her. Here love was stronger than death, and firmer than
the grave. Cant. 8:6. Her mother and sister had come from
Friesland to see her; but this.could not move her, she took
leave of them, for she chose to suffer affliction, rather than
to have worldly joy; hence she went with her sister Maria. They
were together brought to Deventer. There blind leaders came to
them, who with subtlety sought to win them to human
institutions. But they answered, "We hold to the Word of God,
and do not regard the dictates of the pope, nor the errors of
the whole world." Friar Grouwel also sought to teach them much,
but was not able to prove his assertions by the Scriptures.</p>

<br /><cite>*Province.</cite> 

<p>Now as he could not overcome them, he said"The devil speaks
through your mouth, away with them to the fire.".</p>

<p>They greatly rejoiced that they were worthy to suffer for
the name of Christ, and to help bear His reproach. Acts
5:41,</p>

<p>They were then brought to the house at Delden; where many
efforts were made to cause them to apostatize, yet all in vain.
A commissary came from the court of Burgundy, who greatly
extolled the mass and all the institutions of the pope; but he
could not prevail against the Scriptures which they adduced. He
then asked them whether they were rebaptized.' They replied, "We
have been baptized once according to the command of Christ and
the practice of the apostles; for there is but one true
baptism, and he who receives it, has put on Christ, and leads
an unblamable life through the Holy 'Ghost; in the answer of a
good conscience." Eph. 4:5; Gal. 3:27; I Pet. 3:21. He also
asked them, whether they believed that Christ was wholly
present in the sacrament. This they considered a blind
question, and said, "God will have no likeness or image, neither
in heaven nor on earth (Exodus 20:4); for He says through the
prophet: 'I, even I am the Lord; and beside me there is no
Saviour.' Isa. 43:11. But as regards the Supper, we find that
Christ left it as a memorial of His death, with bread and wine;
as often as we commemorate it, we are to show forth His death
till He come." I Cor. 11: 26.</p>

<p>Now as Maria and Ursula regarded all the institutions of the
pope as heresy, they were brought into open court at Delden, on
the thirteenth of November, before the children of Pilate and
Caiaphas, where they were sentenced to death, in which they
rejoiced, praising God. When they were led to the stake, many
of the people, seeing their steadfastness, wept. But they sang
for joy, and said, "Weep not, on account of what is inflicted
upon us.""We do not suffer," said Maria,"as witches or other
criminals, but because we adhere to Christ, and will not be
separated from God; hence be converted, and it shall be well
with you forever."</p>

<p>When the time of suffering drew nigh, Maria said, "Dear
sister; heaven is opened for us; for what we now suffer for a
little while, we shall forever be happy with our bridegroom."
They then gave each other the kiss of peace. Thereupon they
prayed together to God; that He would forgive the judges ,
their sins, since they knew not what they were doing; and that
as the world was sunk in blindness, God would have compassion
on them, and receive their souls into, His eternal kingdom:
They first took Maria; who entreated the authorities not to
shed any more innocent blood. Then she fervently prayed to God,
and also prayed for those who put her to death; whereupon she
joyfully arose, and went with such great gladness to the stake,
that it cannot be told, saying, "To Thee, O Christ, I have given
myself; I know that I shall live with Thee forever. Therefore,
O God of heav-</p>

</div><div id="469"> 

<p>en, into Thy hands do I commend my spirit." The executioner
swore because the chain did not suit him; but she said, "Friend,
consider what you are doing; my body is not worthy that you
should blaspheme Christ on account of it; repent, lest you burn
for it in hell." The preacher, a teacher at Delden, turned
Ursula around, but she turned back again, and urgently
said, "Let me behold the end of my sister, for I also desire to
receive the glory into which she shall enter."</p>

<p>After Maria was burned, they asked Ursula, whether she would
not yet apostatize."No," said she,"not for death; I will not
thus forsake the eternal riches." They would also honor her
with the sword, but she said, "My flesh is not too good to be
burned for the name of Christ." To one of her relatives she
said, "Bid John van Beckum good night, and tell him to serve
God, to whom I am now about to be offered." When she came to
the wood, she clasped her hands, and said, "Our Father which art
in heaven.""Yea," said the priest,"there you will find
Him.""Because I seek Him there," she said,"I must die this
temporal death. If I should confess Him in the bread, I might
live longer." When she stepped upon the wood, her foot
slipped."I think I am falling off," she said."Stop," cried the
tyrant;"she means to apostatize.""No," said she,"the block
slips from under me; I will not faint in the Word of God, but
constantly adhere to Christ." Thus both remained steadfast unto
the end, and sealed the Word of God with their death, in great
patience and boldness, leaving us a good example.</p>

<h2>JOHN CLAESS, AND LUCAS LAMBERTS, AN OLD MAN,<br />
CALLED GRANDFATHER; TOGETHER WITH<br />
SEVERAL TESTAMENTS WRITTEN BY JOHN<br />
CLAESS, WHILE IN PRISON AT AMSTERDAM, TO HIS WIFE, CHILDREN,<br />
AND OTHER FRIENDS, IN<br />
THE YEAR 1544</h2> 

<h2>A testament to his wife</h2> 

<p>An affectionate salutation in the Lord, to my beloved wife,
whom I no longer love after the flesh, but after the soul. Hear
my admonition</p>

<p>You know that as long as we enjoyed prosperity with Israel
according to the flesh, we were ignorant of ourselves; but now
that the good Father lays His hand upon us, we feel that we are
sick, weak, miserable, poor, and naked. Therefore, my dear
wife, take Jesus Christ for an example, and behold the way in
which He went before us, and that we must through much
tribulation enter into the kingdom of heaven. Jas: <i>5:10; II
Tim. 3:</i> 12. Forget my flesh and all your sensuality and all
your carnal desires, and pray to God for faith that you may
overcome. And I will willingly give myself to the Lord in the
same manner as He comforts my heart by His grace. You have yet
time for amendment, but I am bound to His grace, in which I
trust. Hence think not of what is past, but persevere with a
firm confidence in the Lord; He will help you in everything for
the best; give yourself up to this and always join yourself to
those who fear the Lord, for this will be for your best
interests. For"blessed is the man that walketh not in the
counsel of the ungodly, nor standeth in the way of sinners, nor
sitteth in the seat of the scornful; but his delight is in the
law of the Lord, and in his law doth he meditate day and
night." Ps. 1:1,2.</p>

<p>My beloved wife, the God-fearing speak of it, and thereby
men depart from evil; for by the fear of the Lord men depart
from evil, and through love every good thing is accomplished.
Prov. 16:6: Awake, for we have both been negligent. Let the
word of the Lord incite you to all good. Ask Him for His holy
Spirit; who can comfort you; for the sufferings of this present
time are not worthy to be compared with the glory which shall
be revealed in us. Romans 8:18. For this is the trial which
must be found in our faith, being much more precious than of
gold that perisheth, though it be tried with fire. I Peter
1:7.</p>

<p>My dear wife, if we might have entered into the kingdom of
God as we began, and have so long been doing, the way would not
have been narrow. But our Saviour had to enter through
suffering and anguish into His own glory,-how then will we
enter by the broad way? For narrow is the way, says the Lord,
which leadeth unto life, and few there be that find it, and
still fewer who rightly walk in it. Matt. 7:14. The good Father
did indeed show me this way, but my evil flesh was too powerful
and forced me away from it. Nevertheless, I hope to be saved
through the grace of the Lord; for Paul says, "Though I bestow
all my goods to feed the poor, and though I give my body to be
burned, and have not charity, it profiteth me nothing." Eph.
2:4; I Cor. <i>13:3.</i></p>

<p>Consider what this charity is, and you shall be able to
accept for the best whatever the Lord sends you. How should I
be able to express it,..love is the nature of God; may it be
with you and us all. I give it to you as an affectionate
salutation: May the good and merciful Father shed it abroad
into all our hearts, through His beloved Son. Amen.</p>

<p>Salute all dear friends in the Lord. Pray the Lord for me;
all that He gives me, I will impart again. III John 14; I
Thess. 5:25.</p>

<h2><i>Another testament of John Claess, to his
wife,<br />
A. D. 1544</i></h2> 

<p>Know, my dearly beloved wife, that it is my will and
testament to you in no wise to depart from the word of the
Lord, but always to comfort yourself with it; for the
sufferings of this present time are not worthy to be compared
with the glory which shall be revealed in us, if we continue in
the faith. Oh, let us thereby overcome, and not turn away, and
we shall receive the crown which the good Lord has promised
unto all that love His appearing. II Tim. 4:8. If we desire to
remain</p>

</div><div id="470"> 

<p>here, we do not love His appearing; but if we ask Him for
the Holy Spirit; the same will teach us in all things, and
comfort and strengthen us through His grace, O let us pray; for
through prayer we must receive everything. Hence, my dear wife,
take no thought for the things that concern the body; but seek
the kingdom of God, and His righteousness, and all these things
shall be added unto you. Herewith I commend you to God, and to
the word of His grace, which is able to strengthen and keep you
in all temptation. The grace of the Lord be with you and us
all. Amen. Bring up my dear children in the admonition of the
Lord, this is my will to you; and associate with the good, for
they prosper. Care not for temporal things; for that which is
visible must perish. What you can get take with you, and commit
the rest to faithful friends; and remove with your little ones
far enough to be out of danger, from men. Bring them up in the
admonition of the Lord, and keep with those that fear the Lord.
Deut. 6:20. My dear wife, be well contented; if the Lord had
taken me away by a sudden sickness, it would have been your
duty to thank Him; do so now. I' leave you this as a testament.
Watch every day of your life for the appearing of our Lord
Jesus Christ. I Tim. 6:14. The grace of the Lord be with you.
Amen.</p>

<h2><i>A testament to his children, and then to his
wife</i></h2> 

<p>My dear little children, Claes Jans and Gertrude Jans, I
leave you this as a testament when you come of age. Hear the
instruction from your Father. Hate all that the world and your
carnal nature love, and love the commandments of God. I John
2:16. Let this instruct you, for it teaches, "If, any marl will
come after me, let him deny himself;" that is; let him forego
his own wisdom and earnestly pray, "Lord, Thy will be done."
Luke 9:23; Prov. 3:5; Matt. 6:10. If you do this, the Holy
Spirit will teach you all that you ought to believe. Believe
not what men say, but obey the commands of the New Testament,
and ask God to teach you His will. Trust not to your
understanding, but trust in the Lord, and let all your counsel
be in Him, and ask Him to direct your paths.</p>

<p>My children, how you are to love God the Lord, how you must
honor and love your mother, and love your neighbor, and fulfill
all other commandments required of you by the Lord, the New
Testament will teach you. Matt. 22:37, 39. Whatever is not
contained therein, believe not; but obey everything that is
embraced in it. Associate with those who fear the Lord, who
depart from evil, and who do every good thing through love. Oh,
look not to the multitude or the' old custom, but to the little
flock which is persecuted for the word of the Lord; for the
good do not persecute, but are persecuted. When you have given
yourselves to this, beware of all false doctrine; for John
says, "Whosoever transgresseth, and abideth not in the doctrine
of Christ, hath not God. He that abideth in the doctrine of
Christ he hath both the Father and the Son." II John 9. The
doctrine of Christ is: Love, mercy, peace, chastity, faith,
meekness, humility and perfect obedience to God. Gal. 5:22,
23.</p>

<p>My dear children, surrender yourselves to that which is
good, and the Lord will give you understanding in all things. I
give you this as my last farewell. Regard the chastening of the
Lord; for if -you do evil; He will punish you in your souls.
Job 5:17. Hence desist, and cry to the Lord for help; and hate
that which is evil, and the Lord shall deliver you, and you
shall prosper. May God the Father, through His beloved Son
Jesus Christ, give you His Holy Spirit, that He may guide you
into all truth. Amen. John 16:13.</p>

<p>I, John Chess, your father, have written this while in
prison for the word of the Lord. May the good Father grant you
His grace. Amen.</p>

<p>MY DEAR WIFE, I request you to bring up my children, in all
good instruction, to have my testament read to them, and to
bring them up in the Lord, according to your ability, as long
as you remain with them. And I desire of you, that you love
neither, yourself nor your children more than the Lord and His
testimony. Luke 14:26. Suffer not your flesh to overcome you. I
Peter 2:11. If they do not tolerate you in this city, remove
into another. Matt. 10:23. But this I earnestly request of you:
always keep with the good; for blessed is he that associates
with them. He who has always been the helper of the lowly, that
is, the good Father, will help you. Luke 1:48. If you cannot
stand alone, take a husband that fears the Lord (I Corinthians
7:2); but whatever you do, forsake not the Lord for a little
mess of pottage. Gen. 25:34. May your excuse be never so great,
but not for all Amsterdam forsake the Lord. By His grace I will
not forsake Him for the whole world, and do you also likewise.
Matt. 16:26. Oh, let us press our way through by force; I must,
through the grace of the Lord, lose my flesh; forsake yours
also. Matthew 11:12;16:25.</p>

<p>My dear wife, if we should consider suffering, we would
never get out of it; but we must look beyond it to the eternal
reward. I joyfully comfort myself in the Lord; do so also. The
Lord might have taken me from my bed and you would have had to
content yourself; how much more now, for you know not how long
you will remain here? Therefore do as the Lord counsels you: be
always ready for His appearing, and you shall be able to
overcome all things, to those that overcome everlasting rest is
promised. Rev. 21:7.</p>

<p>A firm faith, a sure hope of the eternal reward, and a
burning love to God and our neighbor be with you and me, and us
all. Amen. Matt. 21:21; I Peter 4:8.</p>

<p>Write to me immediately how you are, and I shall be the more
comforted if you comply with my request. Pray; the Lord will be
entreated; this I now experience. Pray together all of you,
that the</p>

</div><div id="471"> 

<p>will of the Lord be done in me and in us all. Amen. Matt.
6:10; 7:11.</p>

<h2><i>A testament of John Class to his brothers
and</i><br />
<i>sister after the flesh</i></h2> 

<p>Know, my dear brothers, Cornelis Clxss, and Gerritt Chess,
and my dear sister Adriaentgen Chess, that I affectionately
desire of you, that you turn to the Lord, and forsake all your
pride, covetousness, and all wickedness, as also all bad
company, and be quiet, and associate with the good. Search the
Word of the Lord, and ask Him for His Holy Spirit, and the same
shall instruct you in everything which is needful for you. This
will come to pass, if you deny yourselves and forego your own
will; for the Lord says, "If any man will come after me, let him
deny himself, and take up his cross daily and follow me."
Therefore die unto all your lusts, and you shall never die, for
the wages of sin is death. Col. 3:5; Rom. 6:23. But ask God for
His Holy Spirit, who will so change your minds, that you will
hate evil and shun it. Oh, my most beloved, hate that which is
evil, and love the good, and God, who alone is good, will be
with you. But if you will continue in your wicked sensuality, I
testify to you from the mouth of the Lord, that you will
condemn yourselves. Rom. 8: 13. But I am persuaded better
things of you, though I thus speak. Heb. 6:9. Oh, keep what the
Lord hath made known to you, namely, "Whatsoever' ye would that
men should do' to you, do ye even so to them," and it will be
well with you, and you shall prosper in every good thing. To
this end may the good God help you, through Jesus Christ His
beloved Son. Amen.</p>

<h2><i>Another testament of John Class, to all
his</i><br />
<i>kindred</i></h2> 

<p>Be it known to you, dear brothers and sisters, cousins and
relatives, and all my kindred, that I do not suffer as a thief,
murderer or evildoer, but for the ordinance which the apostles
of the Lord taught and instituted, namely the ordinance of the
holy church, made fifteen hundred years ago, which Jesus Christ
enjoined upon His dear disciples, and sealed with His blood,
and which the apostles preached and taught, and confirmed with
their blood. I Pet. 4:15; Mark 16:15; Heb. 9:14; Acts 2:14;
7:58; 12:2. My dear friends, do not be dejected or cast down on
my account, because men say that I died as an Anabaptist and
heretic. There is but one baptism given, and that upon faith;
before faith God has not commanded baptism. Now someone might
ask, "What I ought infants not to be baptized?" No; but they are
nevertheless saved through the merits of Jesus Christ, and are
baptized in His blood; for it is written, "For as in Adam all
die, even so in Christ shall all be made alive." I Cor. 15:22.
This is done through pure grace, without any sign. Acts 15:11.
But my dear friends, the Lord has commanded to preach the
Gospel, and they that believe it, are to be baptized.</p>

<p>Mark 16:16. He also commanded that the believers should
observe His Supper, in remembrance of Him, in such a manner as
He instituted, and the apostles practiced it. Matt. 26:26; Acts
2:42. Besides these, He.did not command them anything; no mass,
no infant baptism, no auricular confession, nor any other
outward worship. But He commanded to love God alone, to obey
His Word, and to love our neighbor as ourselves. Luke 10:27.
Oh, where are they to be found who do this? Search the Word of
God; there is no Christian who does not know this. You cannot
maintain thereby, what they teach, namely, that you should
continue in the holy -church. You must know what the holy
church is, namely, the assembly of believers born by the Word
of God (I Pet. 1:23); for you well know that no one can come
into this world without being born, so no one can come into the
future world, unless he is born -again as Peter declares, "not of corruptible seed, but of incorruptible, by the word
of God, which liveth and abideth forever." John 3:3; I Pet.
1:23. Oh, well for him who is born'of it! they that are thus
regenerated, practice the true baptism and the true Supper.
They also separate themselves from all who teach a scandalous
doctrine, or live disorderly; they do not destroy their bodies,
for this is not taught in the Word of God; but they avoid their
company.until they repent (II Thess. 3:6); for they are the
Christian church, the community of the saints; they have
forgiveness of sins; for there is none other name given in
heaven or on earth whereby they can be saved, but the name of
Jesus; that is, through His merits. Acts 4:12. They believe and
live only according to His ordinances. He did not kill those
who did not believe in Him, neither did His holy church do
this. But He and His own have been slain from the beginning,
and thus it shall continue. Rev. 13:8. By this you shall know
who are His own. Not those who boast of His name, and maintain
their cause with the sword; but those that live according to
the example of their Lord, and confirm their cause with the
Word of God, which is the sword of the true believers. I Pet.
2: 21; Eph. 6:17. Now some might say, "What has become of the
forefathers, who did not know better?" We leave this to God. It
might also be said that the Lord promised to be with us even
unto the end of the world. Matt. 28:20. He is always with
believers-but never with unbelievers-namely, with His word and
the right use of Iris signs, that is, baptism and the Supper,
and will always be with those who walk aright, and live
conformably to His Word.</p>

<p>Dear friends, at the time of the apostles there arose seven
different sects among them, but the true doctrine was therefore
not to be rejected. Now, though many wicked miscreants have
arisen under the Gospel, the Word of God has not
depreciated</p>

<p>he that would be saved must submit to it. Romans 9:6. In the
time of the righteous Tobit all Israel worshiped golden calves,
which king Jeroboam had</p>

</div><div id="472"> 

<p>caused to be made; he [Tobit] alone adhered to the Lord his
God, and did what He had. commanded him.</p>

<p>Friends, look not to the multitude, but to the Word of God,
which will not deceive you."Cursed be the man that trusteth in
man, and maketh flesh his arm; but blessed is the man that
trusteth in the Lord." Jer. 17:5, 7. I trust in this, that He
prays to His Father, not only for those who were with Him, but
also for. all them who shall turn to Him through the word. John
17:20. May the good Father, through His only San Jesus Christ,
give you a true understanding, that you may henceforth learn to
know Him. II: Tim. 2:7.</p>

<h2>ACCOUNT OF THE SENTENCE , PASSED ON JOHN<br />
CLAESS, AND THE, OLD MAN NAMED LUCAS LAMBERTS OF BEVORgN, ALSO CALLED GRAND-FATHER; AND;HOW THEY DIED</h2> 

<p>When John Chess, and. Lucas -Lamberts, an old man of
eighty-seven years, called grandfather, came into court, they
greeted each other with a kiss.</p>

<p>John Claess said to the grandfather, "My dear brother, how do
you feel?"</p>

<p>The grandfather replied pleasantly with a glad
countenance, "Quite well, lily dear brother."</p>

<p>Then said John Claess, "Fear neither fire nor the sword; Oh,
what a joyful feast will be prepared for us before the clock
strikes twelve I"</p>

<p>Upon this they were separated.</p>

<p>The bailiff then said, "You are rebaptized."</p>

<p>John Chess answered, "I was baptized upon my faith, as all
Christians ought to be, according to the Scriptures; read
this." Matt. 28:19.</p>

<p>They said to 'him again, "You belong to the accursed
Anabaptists, who originate strange sects, opinions, errors and
contention among the people." Acts 16:20; 17:6.</p>

<p><i>John Class':</i> "We are not such people; we, desire
nothing else than the true Word of God; if I am to suffer
therefore, I demand the seven judges."*</p>

<p>He was then asked whether he did not confess that he was
rebaptized four years ago or thereabouts.</p>

<p>John Chess replied, "Three years ago or thereabouts I was
baptized as all Christians ought to be."</p>

<p>The court said, "You acknowledge, it then?"</p>

<p><i>John Class</i>, "Yes."</p>

<p>Court, "Well, since you confess it, we have full power from
the seven judges."</p>

<p><i>John Class:</i> " Can I not obtain the full court? it is
granted even to thieves and murderers, why should it not be
granted to me?",</p>

<br /><cite>*We have in our possession the original sentence
of these two persons; but as the gist of the same is given
here, it is not necessary to adduce it verbatim.</cite> 

<p>The four judges then went out to pronounce the sentence.</p>

<p>Lifting up his voice, John Claess said, "O merciful Father,
Thou knowest that we do not desire revenge" (Rom. 12:19), and
he wrung his hands, saying, "O merciful Father, grant them Thy
Spirit, that. Thou mayest not count this to them as
wickedness." Acts 7:60,</p>

<p>The four judges now returned into the court, and sat down to
declare the sentence, saying, "John Ciaess, a native of Alkmaar,
who has taught the people false doctrines, errors and new
opinions-"</p>

<p>Upon this John Claess answered, "It is not so."</p>

<p>The lords of the court then forbade John Claess to speak,
and good John Chess observed silence, that be, might hear his
sentence. They then proceeded with their sentence, and said to
the clerk, "Read his crime." He read that he had caused to be
printed at Antwerp six, hundred books, which he had concluded
with enno Simons, and scattered abroad in this country,
containing strange opinions and sectarianism, and had kept
school and held meetings, to introduce errors among the people
(Acts 17.:6), which is contrary to the decree of the Emperor,
and our mother the holy church, and which it is not proper for
my lords of the court to tolerate, but to correct.</p>

<p>Here John, Chess reproved them as before, saying, "They are
not sectarianisms, but it is the Word of God." Acts 24:14,</p>

<p>Then the lords of the court said, "We sentence you to death,
to be executed with the sword, the body to be placed on the
wheel, and the head upon a stake; we do not sentence you, but
the court does."</p>

<p>As John Claess went out of the court, he said, "You citizens bear witness that we die for no other reason
than for the true Word of God." This occurred in the court.
Having ascended the scaffold, John Claess audibly addressed the
people with these words: ,"Hear, ye citizens of Amsterdam; lie
it known unto you, that I suffer not as a thief or murderer, or
because we have sought the property or life of others. However,
do not understand me as justifying or exalting myself; but I
come with the prodigal son, and depend only on the pure Word of
God."</p>

<p>Upon this' the executioner struck him on his breast. John
Chess turned around, and exclaimed with .a. loud voice:, "O Lord, forsake me not, now or in eternity. Lord, Thou Son
of David, receive my soul."</p>

<p>Thus the dear brother John Chess confirmed the Ward of God
with his crimson blood, his head then being placed upon a
stake, and his body on the wheel, as food for the birds and
wild beasts. And the old grandfather of eighty-seven years,
also willingly, for the truth of Christ Jesus, yielded his
hoary head and beard to the sword of these tyrants. They now
rest together under the altar.</p>

<h1>A NUMBER OF BELIEVERS, BAPTIZED ACCORDING TO THE COMMAND OF CHRIST, HAVING ASSEMBLED TO HEAR THE WORD OF GOD, ARE PUT TO DEATH AT ROTTERDAM, IN THE YEAR 1544</h1>

</div><div id="473"> 

<p>As Saint Paul, through the Spirit of God, foretold that
all.who will live godly in Christ Jesus shall suffer
persecution, so it was also verified in the city of Rotterdam,
about A. D. 1544, where a number of the pious followers of
Jesus Christ had assembled together in the name of the Lord, to
converse with each other about the Word of God, and thus to
edify and strengthen one another in the accepted truth of the
holy Gospel; also to pray with an humble heart and with one
accord to the great God of heaven and earth, for forgiveness
and remission of sins, and the gift of the Holy Ghost, and thus
to give praise and thanks with one mind to His most adorable
name. Eph. 5:1; Heb. 10:24; 3:13; I Thess. 5:11; Rom. 15:16;
Acts 1:14.</p>

<p>This good exercise in godliness the papists, who hate the
truth, sought to prevent and stop as much as lay in their
power, so that said God-fearing assembly fell into their hands,
having been betrayed by a woman who came to the house to borrow
a kettle. The defenseless sheep having thus fallen into the
claws of the wolves, these, according to their nature, treated
them in the most cruel manner, in order to draw them away from
the truth; all of which they willingly suffered and endured in
patience for the name of Jesus, in the firm hope of His
imperishable kingdom. Therefore, since they could by no
tortures be brought to apostatize, they were sentenced to
death, which sentence was executed in the following manner: The
men were beheaded with the sword at the said place, while the
women, in the most cruel manner were thrown into a boat, and
thrust under the ice until death followed. Thus these two
assemblies, or classes of people, that is the church of God,
and the congregation of Satan clearly evinced of which spirit
they werer children (I John 3:10; Luke 9:55); which cart easily
be seen by their fruits and nature. The anti-Christians by
this, that, as ravening and devouring wolves, they were born by
nature to seize and destroy. The congregation of Jesus Christ
by this, that, as humble sheep and lambs, dumb, and with no
desire for revenge, they were thus led to the slaughter, and
willingly gave their bodies for the name of the Lord. Matt.
7:15; 10</p>

<p>16; Ps. 44:22; I Peter 4:13. Therefore; these sheep shall,
.at the reappearing of the great Shepherd, hear, together with
all faithful servants, the,joyful voice, "Enter into the joy of
your Lord." Heb. 13:20; Matt. 25:23.</p>

<p>Among those that were thus offered, there was also a young
maiden of but fourteen years. She composed the hymn in the old
hymnbook, beginning thus:</p>

<p class="c13">Emanuel die is uytgetogen, uyt sijns haders riick
fn's werelts pleyn.*</p>

<h2>FRANCIS OF BOLSWEERT, A. D. 1545</h2> 

<p>At Bolsweert, in Friesland, there was a true lamb of Christ,
named Francis, who lived uprightly in the fear of God. Job 1:1.
He was therefore apprehended, and conveyed in a sleigh to
Leeuwaerden, where he was asked before the council, why he
would not swear, nor observe the Supper with them in the
church. He answered, "My lords; Christ teaches us that we must
not swear at all; and because you people are unbelieving and
unclean, I will not keep fellowship with 'you?" At these words
the lords were offended, and said, "We are neither thieves nor
murderers; what uncleanness then have we? but it seems to us,
that you hold a false doctrine, and of such heretics there are
still more, all of whom we intend utterly to exterminate."
Francis said, "My lords, be not angry; but you high priests,
show me the false doctrine which I hold, and this from the
Bible, for I have brought one with me; come and instruct me
from it."</p>

<p>The lords then counseled with the priests of Jezebel, and
said, "He has despised our mass; he condemns our customs, and we
have a strict mandate, to which we must be obedient, and
according to that he must die. Thus he' was sentenced to be
burned to ashes on Palm Sunday eve, A. D. 1545. For this
sentence he undauntedly thanked the Lords and said, "I will
forgive you all this from my heart, wishing that the Spirit of
God would enlighten you unto reformation, that you may repent
and live according to the Word of God; I now go to the holy
city, and the inheritance of my Father." He was then led to
death, as a sheep to the slaughter. Many that saw it wept; but
he said, "Weep not, but prepare yourselves to die unto your
sins, for this is the true way to enter into life." .He also
spoke many other comforting wcrds.</p>

<p>After he had openly prayed, "Lord God, receive my soul and
guide it into Thy peace," the executioner commenced his work.
Having stripped him of his clothes, and fastened hire to the
stake, he was about to strangle him with a rope, when the rope
broke, and he fell down. This frightened the executioner, and
he endeavored quickly to burn him to ashes with much peat and
wood; but God manifested His miraculous power, so that the fire
lost its natural force, and the body could not be burned
entirely; on which account the lords became angry at the
executioner, and said that he had not brought enough wood; but
it was the will of God that he should thus be received into the
number of the martyrs.</p>

<h2>OSWALD OF JAMNITS, A. D. 1545</h2> 

<p>In this year, Brother Oswald of Jamnits, was imprisoned for
the faith, at Vienna, in Austria, and</p>

<br /><cite>*Emanuel went forth from His Father's kingdom
into this world.</cite> 

</div><div id="474"> 

<p>various means were tried to cause him to apostatize. The
citizens came to him in prison, and in a friendly manner
earnestly admonished him to recant, or they would have to drown
him in the Danabe. But he said, "Though you drown me, I will not
depart from God and His truth. Christ died for me, and Him will
I follow, and also die for His truth, far rather than forsake
it." No matter whatever they said, they could not make him
apostatize. Two brethren then came to him, who comforted him;
to them he commended his wife and child. They embraced each
other, and thus took leave from one another, wishing him
patience in his suffering, which he innocently had to endure.
After having been confined for one year and six weeks, they
took him from prison on a certain Wednesday night; took him out
of the city, that the multitude of the people should neither
see nor hear anything, and drowned him in the Danube. There was
no trial held over him, nor was his crime made known.</p>

<p>Since he patiently and cheerfully persevered unto the end,
God shall also confess him; and though they executed him
secretly and at night, yet he shall appear in the open judgment
of the Lord in the valley of Jehosaphat, where another judgment
will be held. Joel 3:2. And that judgment will fall a
hundredfold more heavily upon the heads of those who thus
presumptuously condemn innocent blood on earth; yea, it shall
be more tolerable for those of Sodom and Gomorrah in the last
day, than for such. Matt. 10:15.</p>

<h2>ANDREW KOFLER, A. D. 1545</h2> 

<p>In the year 1545, one Andrew Kofler from Etschland was also
apprehended for the faith and the divine truth, at Ips, on the
Danube. As he would not renounce, and could not be made to
apostatize by the priests and false prophets, he was sentenced
to death by the children of Pilate, and delivered to the
executioner, who executed him with the sword, thus satisfying
the ungodly. Thus he valiantly confessed and testified to the
truth of God even unto death, and is now gone before into
eternal light and life, and rests in Abraham's bosom, yea,
under the altar, under which those lie, who have been beheaded
and slain for the Word of God, and the testimony of Jesus
Christ, until the number of their fellow brethren who shall
also be killed as they were, shall be fulfilled.</p>

<h2>HANS BLIETEL, A. D. 1545</h2> 

<p>In this year, also Brother Hans Blietel, .who had been sent
by the church, was apprehended at Ried, in Bavaria; for those
of Ried had offered a sum of money to the one who should
apprehend him. Hence, there was a traitor, who addressed him
with fair words, pretending to be very zealous, and under a
desire to be with him, decoyed him into his house. The brother
supposed that he was concerned for the salvation of his soul,
and went with him. He then locked him into his house, and
said, "Hans, you are a prisoner." But Hans replied"God forbid
that you should do this; have I not come to thee for good?"</p>

<p>The traitor demanded money of him, and he would release him;
but when the brother refused to accede to this demand, he went
to the authorities and betrayed him. While he went, the wife of
the traitor also demanded money of him; for, said she, the
authorities would take him along any way; she wanted fifteen
guilders, and they would let him go away from the house. But
Brother Hans Blietel would not consent to give her one
farthing; but would with the help of God await all tribulation.
In the meantime, the authorities came with a great number of
armed men, and apprehended the brother, together with the
traitor and his wife, securing them well with ropes, bonds and
straps.</p>

<p>Having arrived in the market town of Ried, they took them,
and tormented them dreadfully, the traitor as well as the
brother; for the authorities thought that he had taken money
from the brother, because they found so little on him. The
traitor's wife also had her hand squeezed until the blood
flowed from it; for they wanted her to tell it. And though they
had not received anything, their treachery became a source of
sore grief to them.</p>

<p>When Brother Hans had lain in prison for four or five weeks,
he was sentenced to death, about St. John's day, to be burnt
alive. He was led out to the place of execution, where the
priests attempted to induce him to desist from and forsake his
faith; but he said to them, "You may well desist from your
wicked deception; I will not hear or embrace your false
doctrine; I have at this day something else to do, than to
listen to you false prophets; I must follow the Lord my God in
Christ, and fulfill what I have promised." The priests,
therefore, stood back, and left him be in peace. On his way to
the place of execution he met one of his acquaintances, named
Michael Dirks, or Kramer. Hans Blietel looked at Michael with a
smiling countenance, and pointed him to heaven. The latter was
astonished that he could smile, going as he was to death and
the fire. This produced a complete contrition of heart in
Michael, as also in his wife, who did not eat anything for
three days, but sought to join the church, and become pious,
and others with them.</p>

<p>When the dear Brother Hans arrived at the place of
execution, he thought of the church, and cried with a loud
voice unto the multitude of the people assembled, "Is there any
one here, who has courage to tell the church of God in Moravia,
that I, Hans Blietel, was burned for the Gospel, at Ried, in
Bavaria?" Thereupon a zealous man, full of piety, kindled
thereby, revealed himself, and though he could not get to him,
he called to him, that he would inform the church in Moravia,
that he was burned at Ried, for the faith; which encouraged
Brother Hans, so that he again cried out to the people, "This my
faith is the divine truth, which I will show to you; and I say
unto you, re-</p>

</div><div id="475"> 

<p>pent, reform, and desist from your unrighteous, wicked, and
vicious life; for if you do not do this, the eternal God shall
visit you for your sins; and punish you with the everlasting
pain which is prepared for all sinners, and He shall require
the in nocent blood at your hands, and punish you for it."</p>

<p>The fire having been kindled and prepared, he was tied upon
a ladder. In the meantime; he testified again that this was the
truth and the Way to eternal life, and the true church of Gbd,
appealing to heaven and earth as His witnesses, "And, today,"
said he,"shall God give a sign in heave, to testify that this
is the way to eternal life, " This also occurred; for the sun in
the sky was darkened and became full of spots, so that he gave
forth no shadow. Though the sky was quite clear and bright; yet
the sun emitted a very pale and yellow light upon the earth;
for God intended to confirm' it -by this sign. This lover of
God also sang in the fire; in which he lived for some time,
praising God by his singing, and praying for all men who
<i>were</i> worthy, that God would enlighten them. And thus he
was found constant and steadfast in the faith, in the trial of
the fire, even as -the <i>precious</i> -and pure gold. He had
also foretold as a sign, that his smoke would quickly rise on
high over him, and his soul ascend in it unto heaven;, which
came to pass, the smoke ascending straight up to heaven. Some
said that a beautiful white dove flitted in the fire, and flew
over him to heaven. Thus God assisted him very powerfully.</p>

<h2>MICHAEL MATSCHILDER, ELIZABETH HIS WIFE, -AND HANS GURTZHAM, A. D. 1546</h2> 

<p>In the year 1546, Brother Michael Matschilder, also called
Little Michael, a minister of Jesus Christ and His church, and
two others; namely, his wife, Elizabeth, and Hans Gurtzham, a
shoemaker, were apprehended and examined at Altenburg, in Upper
Kaernthen. A doctor and a learned man of Villach disputed with
them; but this brother gave them such answers, that they had to
withdraw in confusion, unable to accomplish ,anything:</p>

<p>They were then led in iron chains through -Styria, and
delivered into the bailey, at Vienna, to the jailer, who
said, "Come, I will bring you into.a vault, where others of your
brethren are. In there were Hans Stautdach and three fellow:
prisoners.</p>

<p>When they met, they embraced and kissed each other, and
praised God, who had brought them together for the glory of His
name. Hans Stautdach and his three fellow prisoners were then
executed; but these others were kept in prison longer; that is,
about three years, namely, until the .year 1549, when a
conflagration occurred in the city: Then, as is customary in
that city when a: conflagration occurs, the gates of the city
were closed, and the prisoners released. After the fire was
extinguished, Brother Michael and his wife,. through the
providence of God and the assistance of <i>a</i> citizen,
escaped from the city, and came to the church.</p>

<p>Thus God delivered them. unharmed and in peace. But Hans
Gurtzham went back to prison, and was confined there one year
longer; namely, until the year 1550; vv hen he was executed,
about June, being drowned in the Danube, early on a certain
Friday morning.</p>

<h2>QUIRINUS PIETERS OF GR(ENINGEN, BURNT ALIVE<br />
FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, AT<br />
AMSTERDAM; IN HOLLAND, ON THE<br />
16TH OF APRIL, A. D. 1545</h2> 

<p>When the constraint of conscience and faith did not cease,
but increased and broke forth more and more through the
adherents of popery, against the pious Christians, who,
according to the command of Christ had been baptized upon their
faith, it occurred, that a certain pious brother, named
Quirinus Meters, a native of Groeningen, also separated from
popery; and joined the cross-bearing church of Jesus Christ,
called Baptists, or, contemptuously; Anabaptists, having been
received into the church through baptism upon confession of his
faith, by Menno Simons, who was at that time one of the most
eminent teachers in Friesland.</p>

<p>But when he, about six years ago, went .to Holland; and
settled down at Amsterdam, there to live in quiet according to
his faith and conscience, be was very speedily discovered by
the authorities, apprehended; and finally, as he would not
apostatite, sentenced to death, on the sixteenth of April, A.
D: 1545, namely, to be burned to death; which dreadful and
severe punishment this pious hero of Christ steadfastly
endured, having commended his soul into the hands of God.</p>

<p>Ail of this we have taken from the following sentence, which
was publicly read to him, on the day of his death, by-the
rulers of darkness, and a true copy of which, extracted from
the book of criminal sentences, has now been transmitted to us
through the secretary there. The contents of the same, with the
exception of the title, are as follows</p>

<p><i>Sentence of death pronounced upon Quirinus</i><br />
<i>Pieters o f Grcpningen</i></p>

<p>Whereas Quirinus Pieters, a native of Grceningen, has
embraced the unbelief and heresy of the Anabaptists, having
been rebaptized about'six years ago, by Menno Simons, a teacher
of the aforesaid sect, and whereas he holds pernicious views
concerning the sacraments of the holy church, and, moreover,
has induced others, into such unbelief and-errors, persuading
them into it, directly contrary to the holy Christian faith,
the ordinances of the holy church, and the decrees of his
Imperial Majesty; our.,gracious lord; and whereas he
obstinately continues in the aforesaid unbelief, therefore, my
lords the judges, having heard the demand made by my lord the
bailiff concerning the aforesaid Quirinus Pieters; as also his
answer and confession; and having fully considered the
circumstances of said matters, sentence the aforesaid Qui-</p>

</div><div id="476"> 

<p>rinus Pieters to be burnt by the executioner; and
furthermore; declare his property confiscated for the benefit
of the exchequer of his Imperial Majesty. Pronounced this
sixteenth of April, A. D. 1545, in the presence of the entire
bench of judges, except Sir Henry Dirks, Burgomaster.</p>

<p>Pursuant to this sentence, Quirinus Pieters was executed by
the executioner on the same day.</p>

<p>The whole of this was extracted from the book of criminal
sentences, in the keeping of the secretary of the city of
Amsterdam. N. N.</p>

<h2>HANS STAUDTACH, ANTONY KEYN, BLASIUS BECK,<br />
AND LEONHARD SCHNEIDER, A. D. 1546</h2> 

<p>In the year 1546, four brethren, namely, Hans Staudtach of
Kaufbeuren, Anthony Keyn, a tailor of Gunzenhausen, Blasius
Beck and Leonhard Schneider, both of them also of Kaufbeuren,
while on their way, with their wives and children. to the
church in Moravia, were apprehended in Austria. On the third of
August they were brought to Vienna, two and two fettered
together, with great chains on their feet, and led through the
city like criminals, with their wives and children following
after them. They were brought into prison, with their wives and
children, and left for four days. In these four days they were
examined, and sorely assailed, w~ , -aer they would continue in
this faith; this they confessed, with the help and power of God
they would do. Thereupon the four brethren were put into
another prison. Afterwards they examined them again, and
brought their wives and children into the house of the judge,
but prevented the brethren from talking much with them.</p>

<p>On Sunday, the sixteenth of August, much people came to them
in prison, and talked with the brethren, and concerning their
wives. But however hard they were pressed to recant, they
remained valiant and steadfast, though they threatened to take
away their children from them. In the meantime, however, their
wives were released, and came to the church. Subsequently much
craftiness was resorted to, to intimidate them, and cause them
to apostatize. Four times they were brought before the
authorities at Vienna, also before monks, priests and doctors,
whom Christ does not in vain designate ravening wolves, of whom
we are to beware; for their priests are like wolves, and indeed
come under a fair appearance, to devour them; yea, would have
them all killed and destroyed. Hence, it grieves the false
prophets to leave any one pious and unseduced, and therefore
they labor much and in many various ways. They have enough who
follow the doctrine of their false prophets, and walk after
their ungodly and vicious life; they might well leave the pious
in peace.</p>

<p>Thus they also tempted these lovers of God, yet could not
gain them, but were put to shame and reproach: for no one can
pluck Christ's own out of His hand. John 10:28. They also read
to them the mandate of the king, and threatened them with
fire,water and the sword, or that they should be kept on bread
and water, and separated, or drowned in the night, like Brother
Oswald of Jamnits, as related previously. By these things they
endeavored to intimidate them; but there was no intimidating
these soldiers and heroes of the truth of God.</p>

<p>On the fifth day after St. Michael's they were subjected to
another hearing, whether they would renounce their faith; if
not, they had orders to put them to death by fire, water or the
sword. This was -the last warning. But when they could
accomplish nothing by their threats, they brought all four of
them back into the <i>Joppen</i> (a prison). Hans Staudtach was
left in prison, Blasius in the woodroom, .and Leonhard, with
another, in a vacant apartment; but afterwards, about All Souls
Day, they were put together again.</p>

<p>After all this, as they remained constant and steadfast, and
continued to confess that they were going in the true way of
the divine truth, which they were willing to seal with their
blood, they were condemned to death, a little after St.
Martin's day, on the 22d of November, and delivered to the
executioner, who bound them, and, in order to avoid too great a
sensation, and not to have a large concourse of people come
together he led them out to the place of execution, in the
morning, at daybreak.</p>

<p>When they were being led out to the slaughter, they boldly
and joyfully sang. A ring was made, as the executioners usually
do. The brethren then knelt down and fervently prayed, offering
up this burnt offering as their final farewell to the
world.</p>

<p>The executioner became sad, acted with reluctance, and was
grieved in his heart that he had to perform this execution. The
other children of Pilate also wished to be innocent, yet they
had to do it because of their superiors in authority, and by
virtue of their office; but they would much rather have been
excused.</p>

<p>They then blessed each other, and exhorted one another to
steadfastness, to be strong and of good cheer, saying, "Today we
shall be together in the kingdom of our heavenly Father,"
etc.</p>

<p>Thus all four were beheaded with the same sword and
undauntedly and boldly surrendered their necks for the name of
Christ.</p>

<h2>DIRK PIETERS SMUEL AND JACOB DEN GELDERS<br />
MAN, BURNT ALIVE AT AMSTERDAM, ON THE<br />
24TH OF MAY, A. D. 1546</h2> 

<p>After manifold tribulations and afflictions upon the pious
followers of Jesus Christ, it came to pass, that the procurator
from the Hague, and the bailiff of Amsterdam, Waterlandt and
Zeevanck, came to Edam with a whole troop of beadles. These
came on the 12th of March, that is on the Friday preceding
Shrove Tuesday, A. D. 1546, at night, with torches, and
lanterns, to the house of Dirk Pieters Smuel and Jacob den
Geldersman, both of them citizens of Edam, of one faith,
and seekers of the</p>

</div><div id="477"> 

<p>truth. They took them out of their own houses from their
beds, and led them from the east end out of the stone portal to
the west end, where they were put into a boat, and thus brought
prisoners to Amsterdam, whence, after a certain time, they were
brought to the Hague, where, on the 16th of May of the same
year, they were examined concerning their faith, and as they
would steadfastly adhere to the accepted truth, were sentenced,
on the 22d of May, in the high court of the lords of this
world, to be burnt alive. Thereupon they were again brought to
Amsterdam, where, after suffering many trials, they were bound
on ladders, and burned alive, enduring it with great
steadfastness. They joyfully surrendered and forsook their
earthly habitations, and are now awaiting a building of God,
which shall endure forever in heaven. II Cor. 5:1.</p>

<h2>ANDREW SMUEL AND DIRK DIETERS. THE DEFENSE<br />
AND CONFESSION OF FAITH WHICH THEY<br />
MADE AT AMSTERDAM BEFORE THE<br />
COMMISSARIES, AND CONFIRMED<br />
WITH THEIR DEATH, IN<br />
THE YEAR 1546</h2> 

<p>Blessed be God the Father of our Lord Jesus Christ forever
and ever, Amen. Hear my confession to the princes of this
world. In the first place, they inquired concerning my faith. I
therefore said to them, "A scribe came to the Lord, and asked
Him, saying: 'Master, which is the great commandment?' The Lord
said to him: 'Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all thy
heart, and with all thy soul, and with all thy strength, and
thy neighbor as thyself; this is the greatest commandment, and
there is no other.' The scribe answered and said</p>

<p>'Thou hast answered well, that there is one God, and to love
him with all the heart, and with all the soul, and with all the
strength, and to love our neighbor as ourself, is more than all
whole burnt offerings and sacrifices.'"</p>

<p>To this they replied, "We know that there is one God; but do
you believe, that when the priest stands at the altar, God is
in his hands?"</p>

<p>I said,"No. Stephen said: 'Behold, I. see the heavens
opened, and the Son of man standing on the right hand of the
Almighty Father."' Acts 7:.56.</p>

<p>They again said, "Then you do not believe that he is
there?"</p>

<p>I said, "No."</p>

<p>Question, "We have been told, that when your pastor went on
one side of the street, and you and two others on the other,
you gave no honor either to him or to the sacrament; is this
true?"</p>

<p>Answer, "Yes."</p>

<p>Ques."Why did you do this?"</p>

<p>Ans."I will tell you, my lords: the Lord says through the
prophet Isaiah, chapter 2, verse 8: 'They worship the work of
their own hands: that which their own fingers have made: and
the meanman boweth down, and the great man humbleth himself:
therefore forgive them not."'</p>

<p>Ques."Did you do it for the reason that it was made by the
hands of men?"</p>

<p>Ans."Yea, my lords, because I would not offend my Lord and
my God with it."</p>

<p>Ques."How long ago is it since you went to confession the
last time?"</p>

<p>Ans."About two or three years."</p>

<p>Ques."Why so?"</p>

<p>Ans."Because the Lord has said: 'Come unto me, all ye that
labour and are heavy laden, and I will give you rest."' Matt.
11:28.</p>

<p>Ques."Did you do it on this account?"</p>

<p>Ans."Yes."</p>

<p>Ques."How long is it since you attended the sacrament?"</p>

<p>Ans."Also about two or three years, "</p>

<p>Ques."Why so?"</p>

<p>Ans."Because Paul says: 'Christ presented to himself a
glorious church, not having spot, or wrinkle, or any such
thing; but that it should be holy and without blemish."' Eph.
5:27.</p>

<p>Ques."Did you do it because you were not worthy of it?"</p>

<p>Ans."Yes, because I have spots and wrinkles."</p>

<p>Ques."What do you believe concerning the holy church?"</p>

<p>Ans."I know of no holy church, except the congregation of
the apostles, of which Christ is the cornerstone."</p>

<p>Ques."We well know this, that there was a holy church
then."</p>

<p>Ans."Can another foundation be laid, than that is laid? I
Cor. 3:11. Paul says to the Galatians, in the first chapter: 'I
marvel that ye are so soon removed from him that called you
into the grace of Christ, unto another gospel: which is not
another; but there be some that trouble you, and would pervert
the gospel of Christ. But though we, or an angel from heaven,
preach any other gospel unto you, than that which we have
preached unto you, let him be accursed. As we said before, so
say I now again, If any man preach any other gospel unto you
than that ye have received, let him be accursed. For do I now
persuade men, or God? or do I seek to please men? for if I yet
pleased men, I should not be the servant of Christ. But I
certify you, brethren, that the gospel which was preached of me
is not after man. For I neither received it of man, neither was
I taught it.' Gal. 1:6-12. He further says, to the Corinthians:
'For I determined not to know anything among you, save Jesus
Christ, and him crucified."' I Cor. 2:2.</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "Well, what do you hold concerning Mary the
mother of God?"</p>

<p>Ans."Much, for she humbled herself before the Lord, and was
exalted through her humility."</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "You have answered well. What do you hold with
regard to purgatory?"</p>

<p>Ans."I know of only two ways." Matt. 7:13.</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "Do you know your pastor well?"</p>

</div><div id="478"> 

<p><i>Ans.</i> "I know him well by sight; but I have never
spoken to him, nor he to me."</p>

<p>Ques."Why did you not hear him?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "Because James says in his first chapter</p>

<p>'A double minded man is unstable in all his ways.'"</p>

<p>Ques."Well, what did he say?",</p>

<p><i>Ans."I</i> have heard say that he said that man can not
be saved through the death of Christ alone."</p>

<p>Ques."Did he say amiss in this?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "Yes; Paul says: 'By him all that believe are
justified from all things, from which we could not be justified
by the law of Moses.'" Acts 13:39.</p>

<p>Ques."It is well known that we can not be saved through the
law."</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "Peter says that there is none other name under
heaven given among men, whereby they can be saved, than through
the name of Jesus Christ."</p>

<p>Ques."How long is it since you were baptized?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "Ever since I was born."</p>

<p>Ques."Are you satisfied, that you can be saved by
baptism?"</p>

<p><i>Ans."I</i> believe to be saved through the death of
Christ."</p>

<p>Ques."We nevertheless must know whether you believe that you
will be saved by it?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "I believe to be saved through the death of
Christ."</p>

<p>Ques."If you had the opportunity, would you not be baptized
again?"</p>

<p><i>Ans."I</i> know not; for God knows both to will and to
do."</p>

<p>Ques."Still, we want to know whether you regard the baptism
which you received in your infancy as the true baptism, or that
which is administered on faith?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "If this is all you want to know, it is written
that the Lord said to His apostles: 'Go ye into all the world,
and preach the gospel to every creature. He that believeth and
is baptized shall be saved; but he that believeth not shall be
damned.' Mark 16:15, 16. Further, the men said to Peter and the
other apostles: 'What shall we do to be saved? Rcent;pent, he
said, and be baptized every one of you in the name of Jesus
Christ for the remission of sins, and ye shall receive the gift
of the Holy Ghost. For the promise is unto you, and to your
children, and to all that are afar off, even as many as the
Lord our God shall call. And with many other words did he
testify and exhort, saying, Save yourselves from this untoward
generation. Then they that gladly received his word were
baptized: and the same day there were added unto them about
three thousand souls. And they continued steadfastly in the
apostles' doctrine and fellowship, and in breaking of bread and
in prayers. And fear came upon every soul: and many wonders and
signs were done by the apostles. And all that believed were
together, and had all things common; and sold their possessions
and goods, and partedthem to all men, as every man had need.
And they continuing daily with one accord in the temple, and
breaking bread from house to house, did eat their meat with
gladness and singleness of heart, praising God, and having
favor with all the people."' Acts 2:37-47.</p>

<p>Ques."There you say yourself that the apostles went into the
temple?"</p>

<p><i>Am.</i> "Yes, this is true; that was a temple which God
had commanded to be built."</p>

<p>Ques."The apostles certainly went forth to teach; where did
they go to teach?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "Whithersoever they came, they went into the
synagogues, and preached the Gospel of Christ." Acts 13:14.</p>

<p>Ques."We have heard that you also teach wherever you
go?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "O Lord, what should I preach; we may have read
the Gospel together."</p>

<p>Ques."Where did you read it together?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "At the dyke."</p>

<p>Ques."With whom did you read it?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "This I do not know."</p>

<p>Ques."How should you not know with whom you read it?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "How should I know it, sometimes with this one,
and sometimes with another."</p>

<p>They therefore mentioned the names of a good many, and
said, "Do you know this and that one?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "Yes, I know them well."</p>

<p>Ques."Have you any books of Menno Simons and of David
Joris?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "No, I have no books in the house, except a Bible
and a Testament, and a little book on the fait."</p>

<p>Thus they asked me many questions, and said, that: so much
had been reported, how we had preached in this and that place,
and that there was no town where he had been, but they knew it
better than myself.</p>

<p>Now, my dear brethren, I commend you to God, and to the Word
of His grace, which is able to strengthen and keep you, and to
give you an inheritance among all them which are sanctified.
Acts 20:32. Hence, let everyone see to it, that no one be so
presumptuous as to pour water into the living fountain; for the
Lord says, John 6:44-46, "No man can come to me, except the
Father which bath sent me draw him: and I will raise him up at
the last day. It is written in the prophets, and they shall be
all taught of God. Every man therefore that hath heard, and
hath learned of the Father, cometh unto me. Not that any man
hath seen the Father." Isa. 54:13. Therefore dear brethren and
sisters; let us with one accord pray to God for wisdom, as the
apostle James teaches us, and beware of the leaven of the
Pharisees and Sadducees, which is hypocrisy; hence let us
follow our supreme Lord and Shepherd Christ, and praise Him
through God the Father, unto whom be praise forever and ever,
Amen.</p>

</div><div id="479"> 

<h2>TESTAMENT WRITTEN BY DIRK PIETERS SMUEL,<br />
DECEASED IN PRISON, TO HIS WIFE, WHEN HE WAS<br />
PREPARING TO DIE FOR THE NAME AND TESTIMONY OF JESUS; IN WHICH HE COMFORTED<br />
AND ADMONISHED HER DILIGENTLY TO<br />
PROVIDE FOR THE BRINGING UP OF HER<br />
CHILDREN THAT THEY MIGHT LEARN<br />
TO FEAR GOD FROM THEIR YOUTH</h2> 

<p>Grace and peace from God the Father of our Lord Jesus
Christ, Amen. I beseech you, therefore, my most beloved.
sister'and wife Wellemoet Claes, that you present your body a
living sacrifice, holy, acceptable unto God, which is your
reasonable service, and be not conformed to this world. I Cor.
1:3; Rom. 12:1, 2. James says, "Whosoever therefore will be a
friend of the world is the enemy of God." James 4:4. For the
Lord Jesus says, "Verily, verily, I say unto you, That ye shall weep and
lament, but the world shall rejoice; and ye shall be sorrowful,
but your sorrow shall be turned into joy. A woman when she is
in travail hath sorrow, because her hour is come: but as soon
as she is delivered of the child, she remernbereth no more the
anguish, for joy that a man is born into the-world. And ye now
therefore have sorrow; but I will see you again, and your heart
shall rejoice, and your joy no man taketh from you." John
16:20-22. Therefore let us say with St. Paul, "Who shall
separate us from the 'love of Christ? shall tribulation, or
distress, or persecution, or famine, or' nakedness, or peril,
or sword? As it is written, For thy sake we are killed all the
day long; we are accounted as sheep for the slaughter. Nay in
all these things we are more than conquerors through him that
loved us." Rom. 8:35-37."He that overcometh, the same shall be
clothed in white raiment; and I will not blot out his name out
of the book of life, but I will confess his name before my
Father, and before his angels. He that hath an ear, let him
hear what the spirit saith unto the churches." Rev. 3:5, 6.
Hence, T beseech you, my most beloved,"See then that you walk
circum spectly, not: as fools, but as 'wise, redeeming the
time, because the days are evil. Wherefore, be ye not unwise,
but understanding what the will of the Lord is;""for the time
past of your life 'may suffice you to have wrought the will of
the Gentiles, when you walked in lasciviousness, lusts; excess
of wine, revellings, banquetings, and abominable
idolatries.""Wherefore let him that thinketh he standeth, take
heed lest he fall. There hath no temptation taken you but such
as is common to man: but God is faithful, who will not suffer
you to be tempted above that you are able; but will with the
temptation also make a way to escape, that you may be able to
bear if." Eph. 5:15-17; I Peter 4:3; 1 Cor. 10:12, 13., "Wherefore, my dearly beloved, flee from idolatry" (I Cor.
10:14), and"Know; that' ye were not redeemed with corruptible
things, as silver and gold, from your vain conversation . . .
but withthe precious blood of Christ, as of a lamb without
blemish and without spot: who verily was foreordained before
the foundation of the world, but was manifest in these last
times for you, who by him do believe in God, that raised him up
from the dead, and gave him glory; that your faith and hope
might be in God." I Peter 1:18-21. Now, the end of the
commandment is charity out of a pure .heart, and of a good
conscience, and of faith unfeigned." I Tim. 1:5."These words
spake Jesus, and lifted up his eyes to heaven, and said,
Father, the hour is come, glorify thy Son, that thy Son also
may glorify thee: as thou hast given him power over all flesh,
that he should give eternal life to as many as thou has given
him. And this is life eternal, that they might know thee the
only true God, and Jesus Christ, whom thou hast sent." John
17:1-3."For such a high priest became us, who is holy,
harmless, undefiled, separate from sinners, and made higher
than the heavens; who needeth not daily, as those high priests,
to offer up sacrifice, first for his own sins, and then for the
people's: for this he did once, when he offered up himself. For
the law maketh men high priests which have infirmity; but the
word of the oath, which was since the law, maketh the Son, who
is consecrated for evermore." Hebrews 7:26-28.</p>

<p>Therefore I admonish you,;my most beloved, seeing we have
such"a high priest over the house of God, let us draw near with
a true heart, in full assurance of faith." Heb. 10:21, 22. John
says, "My little children, these things write I unto you, that ye
sin not. And if any man sin, we have an advocate with the
Father, Jesus Christ the righteous: and he is the propitiation
for our sins." I John 2:1, 2."And now . . . I commend. you. to
God, ,and to the word of his grace, which is able to build you
up, and to give you an inheritance among all them which are
sanctified."* Acts 20:32.</p>

<p>The grace of our Lord be with you now and f orever,
Amen.</p>

<p>So I admonish you, my most beloved mother [wife].,
diligently to see to it, that you teach the children from their
youth to fear God.</p>

<h2>A LETTER OF CONSOLATION AND ADMONITION,<br />
WRITTEN IN PRISON BY DIRK PIETERS SMUEL,<br />
DECEASED, WHO WAS BURNT ALIVE AT<br />
AMSTERDAM, IN HOLLAND, FOR THE<br />
NAME AND TESTIMONY OF JESUS;<br />
TO ALL LOVERS OF THE<br />
EVANGELICAL TRUTH,
   A. D. 1546</h2> 
<p>"Blessed be God, even the Father of our Lord Jesus Christ;
the Father of mercies, and the God of all comfort; who
comforteth us in all our tribulation, that we may be able to
comfort them which are in any trouble, by the comfort wherewith
we ourselves are comforted of God. For as the suf-</p>

<br /><cite>*He deems eternal salvation of greater value
than temporal necessities.</cite> 

</div><div id="480"> 

<p>ferings of Christ abound in us, so our consolation also
aboundeth by Christ."* II Cor. 1:3-5. Hence Paul says, "I desire
that ye faint not at my tribulations for you, which is your
glory. For this cause I bow my knees unto the Father of our
Lord Jesus Christ, of whom the whole family in heaven and earth
is named." Eph. 3:13-15. He Himself says, "I thank thee, O
Father Lord of heaven and earth, because thou hast hid these
things from the wise and prudent, and hast revealed them unto
babes. Even so, Father; for so it seemed good in thy sight . .
. And no man knoweth the Son, but the Father; neither knoweth
any man the Father, save the Son, and he to whomsoever the Son
will reveal him." Matt. 11:25, 26, 27.</p>

<p>He therefore says, "Come unto me, all ye that labor and are
heavy laden, and I will give you rest. Take my yoke upon you,
and learn of me; for I am meek and lowly in heart: and ye shall
find rest unto your souls. For my yoke is easy, and my burden
is light."** Matt. 11:28-30.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear brethren, seeing we have such"a high
priest, let us draw near with a true heart, in full assurance
of faith, having our hearts sprinkled from an evil conscience,
and our bodies washed with pure water. Let us hold fast the
profession of our faith without wavering; for he is faithful
that promised: and let us consider one another to provoke unto
love and to good works: not forsaking the assembling of
ourselves together, as the manner of some is, but exhorting one
another</p>

<p>and so much the more, as ye see the day approaching .... For
we know him that hath said, Vengeance belongeth unto me, I will
recompense, saith the Lord. And again, The Lord shall judge his
people. It is a fearful thing to fall into the hands of the
living God." Heb. 10:21-25, 30, 31. For he says, "Whosoever will
come after me, let him deny himself, and take up his cross and
follow me. For whosoever will save his life shall lose it; but
whosoever shall lose it for the Gospel's sake, shall save it."$
Mark 8:34, 35.</p>

<p>Ye have heard that it hath been said, Thou shalt love thy
neighbor, and hate thine enemy. But I give you a new
commandment, says Christ, "Love your enemies, bless them that
curse you, do good to them that hate you, and pray for them
which despitefully use you, and persecute you; that ye may be
the children of your Father which is in heaven: for he maketh
his sun to rise on the evil and on the good, and sendeth rain
on the just and on the unjust. For if ye love them which love
you, what reward have ye? do not even the publicans so?" Matt.
5:43-47., "Be ye therefore followers of God, as dear children; and
walk in love, as Christ also has loved us, and hath given
himself for us an offering and</p>

<br /><cite>*Having abundance of consolation in his
sufferings, he comforts his brethren.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* He who has not Christ in him, is poor and
miserable.</cite> 

<br /><cite>** He loves his brethren according to the soul;
hence he admonishes them, to seek their salvation. He that
desires the heavenly riches, hates everything which hinders him
therein.</cite> 

<p>a sacrifice to God for .a sweet-smelling savour."* Eph. 5:1,
2., "Flee youthful lusts: but follow righteousness, faith,
charity, peace, with them that call on the Lord out of a pure
heart. But foolish and unlearned questions avoid, knowing that
they do gender strifes. And the servant of the Lord must not
strive; but be gentle unto all men, apt to teach, patient; in
meekness instructing those that oppose themselves; if God
peradventure will give them repentance to the acknowledging of
the truth; and that they may recover themselves out of the
snare of the devil, who are taken captive by him at his
will."** II Tim. 2:22-26., "Who is a wise man and endued with knowledge among you? let
him show out of a good conversation his works with meekness of
wisdom. But if ye have bitter envying and strife in your
hearts, glory not, and lie not against the truth. This wisdom
descendeth not from above, but is earthly, sensual, devilish.
For where envying and strife is, there is confusion and every
evil work. But the wisdom that is from above is first pure,
then peaceable, gentle, and easy to be entreated, full of mercy
and good fruits, without partiality, and without hypocrisy. And
the fruit of righteousness is sown in peace of them that make
peace."*** Jas. 3:13-18., "Whosoever transgresseth, and abideth not in the doctrine of
Christ hath not God. He that abideth in the doctrine of Christ,
he hath both the Father and the Son. If there come any unto
you, and bring not this doctrine, receive him not into your
house, neither bid him God speed: for he that biddeth him God
speed is partaker of his evil deeds." II John 9-11."Beware of
false prophets,**** which come to you in sheep's clothing, but
inwardly they are ravening wolves. Ye shall know them by their
fruits. Do men gather grapes of thorns, or figs of thistles?
Even so every good tree bringeth forth good fruit; but a
corrupt tree bringeth forth evil fruit. A good tree cannot
bring forth evil fruit, neither can a corrupt tree bring forth
good fruit. Every tree that bringeth not forth good fruit is
hewn down, and cast into the fire." Matt. 7:15-19."Be ye
therefore merciful, as your Father also is merciful. Judge not,
and ye shall not be judged: condemn not, and ye shall not be
condemned: forgive, and ye shall be forgiven: give, and it
shall be given unto you; good measure, pressed down, and shaken
together, and running over, shall men give into your bosom. For
with the salve measure that ye mete withal it shall be measured
to you again. And he spake a parable unto them; Can the blind
lead the blind? shall they not both fall into the ditch? The
disciple is not above his master: but every one that is perfect
shall be as his master." Luke 6:36-40."He that overcometh the
world,</p>

<br /><cite>*He who seeks God in visible things, will not
find Him.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* In God are life and peace; he that desires
peace and life, let liim cuter into Him.</cite> 

<br /><cite>** Pure love loves a blameless life.</cite> 

<br /><cite>*** A person can have a Pharisaical holiness,
without the Spirit and righteousness' of Christ.</cite> 

</div><div id="481"> 

<p>shall inherit all things; all things are in God, and God
works all in all." I John 5:4.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear brethren,"Let your conversation be as it
becometh the gospel of Christ: that whether I come and see you,
or else be absent, I may hear of your affairs, that ye stand
fast in one spirit, with one mind striving together for the
faith of the gospel; and in nothing terrified by your
adversaries: which is to them an evident token of perdition,
but to you of salvation . . . . For unto you it is given in the
behalf of Christ, not only to believe on him, but also to
suffer for his sake; having the same conflict which ye saw in
me, and now hear to be in me."* Phil. 1:27-30., "Therefore, my most beloved brethren, think it not strange
concerning the fiery trial which is to try you, as though some
strange thing happened unto you: but rejoice,** inasmuch as ye
are partakers of Christ's sufferings; that, when his glory
shall be revealed, ye may be glad also with exceeding joy. If
ye be reproached for the name of Christ, happy are ye; for the
Spirit of glory and of God resteth upon you: on their part he
is evil spoken of, but on your part he is glorified. But let
none of you suffer as a murderer, or as a thief, or as an evil
doer, or as a busy-body in other men's matters. Yet if any
suffer as a Christian, let him not be ashamed; but let him
glorify God on this behalf. For the time is come that judgment
must begin at the house of God: and if it first begin at us,
what shall the end be of them that obey not the Gospel of God?
And if the righteous scarcely be saved, where shall the ungodly
and the sinner appear? Wherefore, let them that suffer
according to the will of God commit the keeping of their souls
to him in well doing, as unto a faithful Creator." I Peter
4:12-19., "It is a faithful saying: For if we be dead with him, we
shall also live with him: if we suffer, we shall also reign
with him: if we deny him, he also will deny us: if we believe
not, yet he abideth faithful: he cannot deny himself."*** II
Tim. 2:11-13.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear brethren, let us"walk circumspectly, not
as fools, but as wise, redeeming the time, because the days are
evil. Wherefore be ye not unwise, but understanding what the
will of the Lord is." Eph. 5:15-17., "Now the works of the flesh are manifest, which are these:
Adultery, fornication, uncleanness, lasciviousness, idolatry,
witchcraft, hatred, variance, emulations, wrath, strife,
seditions, heresies, envyings, murders, drunkenness,
revellings, and such like: of the which I tell you before, as I
have also told you in time past, that they which do such things
shall not inherit the kingdom of God. But the fruit of the
Spirit is love, joy, peace, longsuffering, gentleness,
goodness, faith, meekness, temperance: against such there is no
law. And they that are Christ's have crucified the flesh with
the affec-</p>

<br /><cite>*The nature of God is made manifest in His
children, who love Him in godly works.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* It is a joy to the godly, when they see men
living in accordance with the word of God.</cite> 

<br /><cite>** What great boldness, through the power of
God!</cite> 

<p>tions and lusts." Gal. 5:19-24. Yea, say the wise of this
world, the heretics do not believe that God is in the
sacrament. Indeed, they are right in not believing it, for Paul
says, "He dwelleth not in temples made with hands; neither is
worshiped with men's hands." Acts 17:24, 25."I give thee charge
in the sight of God, who quickeneth all things, and before
Christ Jesus, who before Pontius Pilate witnessed a good
confession; that thou keep this commandment without spot,
unrebukeable, until the appearing of our Lord Jesus Christ</p>

<p>. the blessed and only Potentate, the King of kings, and
Lord of lords; who only hath immortality, dwelling in the light
which no man can approach unto; whom no man hath seen, nor can
see</p>

<p>to whom be honor and power everlasting. Amen."* I Tim.
6:13-16., "No man hath seen God at any time; the only begotten Son . .
. he hath declared him." John 1:18. Stephen said, "I see the
heavens opened, and the Son of man standing on the right hand
of God." Acts 7:56."At the appearing of Jesus Christ: whom
having not seen, ye love; i n whom, though now ye see him not,
yet believing, ye rejoice with joy unspeakable and full of
glory: receiving the end of your faith, even the salvation of
your souls." I Pet. 1:7-9. I say that it is great presumption
for men to undertake to say that they handle God. For John,
concerning whom the Lord Himself declared, that a greater was
not born of women, than John the Baptist, did not consider
himself worthy to unloose the latchet of His shoes.**</p>

<p>And as it is appointed unto men once to die, but after this
the judgment: so Christ was once offered to bear the sins of
many; and unto them that look for Him shall He appear the
second time without sin unto salvation. But this is my belief:
That to those who through faith in Christ Jesus are dead from
the rudiments of the world (Col. 2:20), and have crucified the
flesh with its evil affections and lusts (Galatians 5:24).
Christ left the Lord's Supper in remembrance of His death, that
they should show the Lord's death till He come (I Cor. 11:25,
26), as Paul says, "I speak as to wise men; judge ye what I say.
The cup of blessing which we bless, is it not the communion of
the blood of Christ? The bread which we break, is it not the
communion of the body of Christ? For we being many are one
bread, and one body: for we are all partakers of that one
bread. Behold Israel after the flesh: are not they which eat of
the sacrifices partakers of the altar? What say I then? that
the idol is anything, or that which is offered in sacrifice to
idols is anything? But I say, that the things which the
Gentiles sacrifice, they sacrifice to devils, and not to God:
and I would not that ye should have fellowship with devils. Ye
cannot drink the cup of the Lord, and the cup of</p>

<br /><cite>*All his delight is in speaking of God, and in
strengthening men in that which is good.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* All the pious constantly lament the vain
boasting and unbelief of the world.</cite> 

</div><div id="482"> 

<p>devils; ye cannot be partakers of the Lord's table, and of
the table of devils."* I Cor. 10:15-21.</p>

<p>End of these letters, translated and finished the 12th of
January A. D. 1614.</p>

<h1>RICHST HEYNES, A. D. 1547</h1>

<p>About the year 1547, there was a God-fearing woman, whose
name was Richst Heynes (so named after her husband, according
to the custom of the country), and who lived in the Ilst, not
far from Sneeck, in Friesland. She also bowed her shoulders
under the easy yoke of the Lord Jesus, hearing and following
His blessed voice, avoiding that of strangers opposed to Him.
The enemies of God perceiving this, very speedily sought to
hinder and stop it; to which end, they sent forth tyrannical
servants, who came as ravening wolves, and apprehended this
defenseless sheep. Her husband perceiving it, escaped with
great peril of life. She was very roughly handled, and cruelly
bound, without the least mercy or compassion, though she was
pregnant, and very near the time of her delivery, so that the
midwife had already been with her. But notwithstanding all
this, they took her with them, though her little children cried
and wept piteously. They brought her to Leeuwaerden in prison,
where after three weeks imprisonment, she gave birth to a son.
The child, to the great astonishment of all who beheld it, very
plainly showed on his arms the marks which his mother had
received from the cruel fetters. They afterwards tortured her
so cruelly, that she could not lay her hands upon her head.
Thus she was maltreated with inhuman tortures, mainly for the
reason that she would not betray her brethren, for these wolves
were as yet by no means satisfied, but thirsted greatly after
more innocent blood. The faithful God, however, who is a
fortress in time of need, and a shield to all them that trust
in Him, guarded her lips, so that none were betrayed by her.
Hence, as nothing could move her to separate from Christ, she
was sentenced at said place, thrust into a bag, like an
irrational brute, and cast into the water and drowned. All this
she as an innocent lamb of Jesus Christ patiently and
steadfastly endured for the name of the Lord, remaining
faithful unto death; hence she is worthy ultimately to receive
the crown of everlasting life from God, and to enjoy it forever
and ever.</p>

<h2>CLASS LECKS, A. D. 1548</h2> 

<p>Claes Lecks, a native of Ostende, was summoned to the
town-house, in the year 1548, on account of certain reports
that were circulating about him. Having arrived there, he was
examined respecting his faith, and, making a good confession,
he was committed to prison. He was a man of very good
reputation, on account of the many alms which he gave to the
poor. When he was examined, he renounced the papistic, Roman
church, and also</p>

<br /><cite>*He that gives heed to the Word of God will
gather wisdom.</cite> 

<p>infant baptism, which he refuted with the holy Scriptures.
Thereupon, as he steadfastly adhered to his faith in God, he
was sentenced to be strangled and burned. As he was being led
out to death, the priest presented the crucifix to him to kiss
it, which he refused to do. The priest also said to the
people, "Pray for this deceiver; for he is going from this fire into
the eternal fire." To this he simply replied, "This is what you say, but I have a better assurance." Thus
he offered up his sacrifice as a true child of God.</p>

<h2>ELIZABETH, A. D. 1549</h2> 

<p>Elizabeth was apprehended on the 15th of January, 1549. When
those who had come to apprehend her entered the house in which
she lived, they found a Latin Testament. Having secured
Elizabeth, they said, "We have got the right man; we have now
the teacheress;" adding, "Where is your husband, Menno Simons,
the teacher?"</p>

<p>They then brought her to the town-house. The following day
two beadles took her between them to prison.</p>

<p>She was then arraigned before the council, and asked upon
oath, whether she had a husband.</p>

<p>Elizabeth answered, "We ought not to swear, but our words
should be Yea, yea, and Nay, nay; I have no husband."</p>

<p>Lords, "We say that you are a teacher, and that you seduce
many. We have been told this, and we want to know who your
friends are."</p>

<p><i>Elisabeth, "My</i> God has commanded me to love my Lord
and my God, and to honor my parents; hence I will not tell you
who my parents are; for what I suffer for the name of Christ is
a reproach to my friends."</p>

<p><i>Lords:</i> "We will let you alone in regard to this, but
we want to know whom you have taught."</p>

<p><i>Elizabeth:</i> "Oh, no, my lords, let me in peace with
this, but interrogate me concerning my faith, which I will
gladly tell you."</p>

<p><i>Lords:</i> "We shall make you so afraid, that you will
tell us."</p>

<p><i>Elizabeth, "I</i> hope through the grace of God, that He
will keep my tongue, so that I shall not become a traitoress,
and deliver my brother into death."</p>

<p><i>Lords:</i> "What persons were present when you were
baptized?"</p>

<p><i>Elizabeth:</i> "Christ said: Ask them that were present,
or who heard it." John 18:21.</p>

<p><i>Lords:</i> "Now we perceive that you are a teacher; for
you compare yourself to Christ."</p>

<p><i>Elizabeth:</i> "No, my lords, far be it from me; for I do
not esteem myself above the offscourings which are swept out
from the house of the Lord."</p>

<p><i>Lords:</i> "What then do you hold concerning the house of
God? do you not regard our church as the house of God?"</p>

<p><i>Elizabeth, "No,</i> my lords, for it is written: 'Ye are
the temple of the living God; as God hath said,</p>

</div><div id="483"> 

<p>I will dwell in them, and walk in them."' II Cor. 6:16.</p>

<p><i>Lords:</i> "What do you hold concerning our mass?"</p>

<p><i>Elizabeth:</i> "My lords, of your mass I think nothing at
all; but I highly esteem all that accords with the Word of
God."</p>

<p><i>Lords:</i> "What are your views with regard to the most
adorable, holy sacrament?"</p>

<p><i>Elizabeth, "I</i> have never in my life read in the holy
Scriptures of a holy sacrament, but of the Lord's Supper." (She
also quoted the Scripture relating to this.)</p>

<p><i>Lords:</i> "Be silent, for the devil speaks through your
mouth."</p>

<p><i>Elizabeth:</i> "Yea, my lords, this is a small matter, for
the servant is not better than his lord."</p>

<p><i>Lords:</i> "You speak from a spirit of pride."</p>

<p><i>Elizabeth:</i> "No, my lords, I speak with frank.
ness."</p>

<p><i>Lords:</i> "What did the Lord say, when He gave His
disciples the Supper?"</p>

<p><i>Elizabeth:</i> "What did He give them, flesh or
bread?"</p>

<p><i>Lords:</i> "He gave them bread."</p>

<p><i>Elizabeth:</i> "Did not the Lord remain sitting there? Who
then would eat the flesh of the Lord?"</p>

<p><i>Lords:</i> "What are your views concerning infant baptism,
seeing you have been rebaptized?"</p>

<p><i>Elizabeth:</i> "No, my lords, I have not been rebaptized.
I have been baptized once upon my faith; for it is written that
baptism belongs to believers."</p>

<p><i>Lords:</i> "Are our children damned then, because they are
baptized?"</p>

<p><i>Elizabeth:</i> "No, my lords, God forbid, that I should
judge the children."</p>

<p><i>Lords:</i> "Do you not seek your salvation in
baptism?"</p>

<p><i>Elizabeth:</i> "No, my lords, all the water in the sea
could not save me; but salvation is in Christ (Acts 4:10), and
He has commanded me to love God my Lord above all things, and
my, neighbor as myself."</p>

<p><i>Lords:</i> "Have the priests power to forgive sins?"</p>

<p><i>Elizabeth:</i> "No, my lords; how should I believe this? I
say that Christ is the only priest through whom sins are
forgiven." Heb. 7:21.</p>

<p><i>Lords, "You</i> say that you believe everything that
accords with the holy Scriptures; do you not believe the words
of James?"</p>

<p><i>Elizabeth:</i> "Yea, my lords, why should I not believe
them?"</p>

<p><i>Lords:</i> "Does he not say: 'Go to the elder of the
church, that he may anoint you, and pray over you?" James
5:14.</p>

<p><i>Elizabeth:</i> "Yea, my lords; but do you mean to say that
you are of this church?"</p>

<p><i>Lords:</i> "The Holy Ghost has saved you already; you need
neither confession nor sacrament?"</p>

<p><i>Elizabeth, "No,</i> my lords, I acknowledge that I have
transgressed the ordinance of the pope,which the Emperor has
confirmed by decrees. But prove to me that I have transgressed
in any article against my Lord and my God, and I will cry woe
over me, miserable being."</p>

<p>The foregoing is the first confession.</p>

<p>Afterwards she was again brought before the council, and led
into the torture chamber, Hans, the executioner, being present.
The lords then said, "We have thus long dealt with you in
kindness;, but if you will not confess, we will resort to
severity with you. The Procurator General said, "Master Hans, seize her."</p>

<p>Master Hans answered, "Oh, no, my lords, she will voluntarily
confess."</p>

<p>But as she would not voluntarily confess, he applied the
thumbscrews to her thumbs and fbrefingers, so that the blood
squirted out at the nails.</p>

<p>Elizabeth said, "Oh! I cannot endure it any longer."</p>

<p>The lords said, "Confess, and we will relieve your pain."</p>

<p>But she cried to the Lord her God, "Help me, O Lord, Thy poor
handmaiden! for Thou art a helper in time of need."</p>

<p>The lords all exclaimed, "Confess, and we will relieve your
pain; for we told you to confess, and not to cry to God the
Lord."</p>

<p>But she steadfastly adhered to God her Lord, as related
above; and the Lord took away her pain, so that she said to the
lords, "Ask me, and I shall answer you: for I no longer feel the
least pain in my flesh, as I did before."</p>

<p><i>Lords:</i> "Will you not yet confess?"</p>

<p><i>Elizabeth:</i> "No, my lords."</p>

<p>They then applied the screws to her shins, one on each.</p>

<p>She said, "O my lords, do not put me to shame; for never a
man touched my bare body."</p>

<p>The Procurator General said, "Miss Elizabeth, we shall not
treat you dishonorably."</p>

<p>She then fainted away. They said to one another, "Perhaps she
is dead."</p>

<p>But waking up, she said, "I live, and am not dead."</p>

<p>They then took off all the screws, and plied her with
entreaties.</p>

<p><i>Elizabeth:</i> "Why do you thus entreat me? this is the
way to do with children."</p>

<p>Thus they obtained not one word from her, detrimental to her
brethren in the Lord, or to any other person.</p>

<p><i>Lords:</i> "Will you revoke all that you have previously
confessed here?"</p>

<p><i>Elizabeth:</i> "No, my lords, but I will seal it with my
death."</p>

<p><i>Lords:</i> "We will try you no more; will you voluntarily
tell us, who baptized you?"</p>

<p><i>Elizabeth:</i> "Oh, no, my lords; I have certainly told
you, that I will not confess this."</p>

<p>Sentence was then passed upon Elizabeth, on the 27th of
March, 1549; she was condemned to death</p>

</div><div id="484"> 

<p>-to be drowned in a bag, and thus offered up her body to
God.</p>

<h2>SIX BRETHREN AND TWO SISTERS, NAMELY: PIETER<br />
JANS, TOBIAS QUESTINEX, JAN PENNEWAERTS,<br />
GIJSBERT JANS, ELLERT JANS, LUCAS MICHIELS, BARBARA THIELEMANS, AND<br />
TRUYKEN BOENS, ALL BURNT ALIVE<br />
AT THE STAKE ON THE SAME<br />
DAY, AT AMSTERDAM, ON<br />
THE 20TH OF MARCH,<br />
1549</h2> 

<p>In the year 1549 there were imprisoned at Amsterdam, for the
truth of Jesus Christ, about twenty persons, men as well as
women, all of whose names are not known, especially since some
of them escaped from prison in the following manner: One of the
prisoners had two brothers living in Waterlandt, who were rough
fellows, and spent much of their time in taverns. So at a
certain time it happened, that as they were sitting in the
tavern, they began to think of their imprisoned brother, and
supposing that the time when he should be offered up, was
drawing nigh, they deliberated among themselves, how they could
best liberate him, and swore an oath that they would shrink
from neither labor nor peril, even though it should cost their
lives; in confirmation of which they held up their fingers,
tossed their hats in the air, and called God to witness. In the
morning, when they were awake and had become sober, their
perilous plan somewhat troubled them; but renuembering the
solemn oath which they owed to God, as also the sad departure
of their dear brother, they manifested the firmness of Romans,
and proceeded in the following manner. They took a rope with a
block, which had been well greased, so that the dry block
should make no noise. This they packed into a basket, and took
it to the house of Jan Jans, who lived opposite the prison, in
the crescent, and said to him, "Jan Jans, may we leave this
basket here, and call for it late in the evening, as it may
suit us?"</p>

<p>Jan Jans assented, without ever thinking of the dangerous
plan, till they came to get their basket.</p>

<p>This Jan Jans had a cousin among the prisoners, named Ellert
Jans, who had a wooden leg and was a tailor whom the Bailiff
had taken from his shop on the new dyke. Therefore these two
brothers availed themselves of a dark evening, and brought a
boat hook with them, which they thrust into the window, and
then climbed up by it. They then made fast a rope, and broke
open the windows with a crowbar. Having thus effected their
purpose, they let their brother down from the window with a
rope, and forthwith, went to other prisoners, all of whom they
let down through the window, except Ellert Jan, who refused to
go out, telling them as his reason, that he was of such good
cheer to offer his sacrifice, and felt so happy that he did not
expect even through a long life to become any better, since he
feared that on the way through the longdesert his courage might
fail him, and thus he would never get across the Jordan, and
reach the promised land. He also said that he was too well
known by his wooden leg, so that he could easily be described
for the purpose of apprehension.</p>

<p>But Tobias, Pieter, Grietgen, Jan, Lyntgen and Barbartgen
were confined in other dungeons, where they could well hear,
but not get to, them. They remained in confinement till the
time of their offering up was fulfilled, except Lyntgen, who
was spared on account of her pregnancy. She also gave birth to
a child while in bonds; but the pain of delivery so affected
her, that she became utterly deranged in her mind; after this
she laid yet for a long time at Amsterdam, in a little house,
in which she also died.</p>

<p>When the day had arrived, on which the aforementioned
persons were to offer up their sacrifices, said Jan Jans
stationed himself close to the tribunal, to see what spirit his
cousin Ellert Jans would show in the last hour of his life. As
soon as Ellert Jans perceived his cousin, he addressed him with
such a happy countenance that all the hearers listened with
astonishment. He also handed him a testament through the iron
bars of the tribunal; but the bailiff cried out like a
ferocious lion</p>

<p>Where is the book? but could not find it out.</p>

<p>With many good arguments he admonished every one,
principally his cousin Jan Jans, that he should no longer
suffer himself to be seduced by the adorned woman, the whore of
Babylon, but should enter upon the way to the city of all good
things. Yea, he said, that he never had lived a happier day;
which Jan so took to heart, that he afterwards also took upon
him the burden of the cross. Thus all the afore-mentioned
friends ended their lives in great joy, and were burnt alive.
Shortly after a lover of the truth composed a hymn in
remembrance of them, the first letter of each verse of which
accords with the first letter of the names. It is found in the
old hymnbook, and is the first of those beginning with T, "'Tis
nu <i>schier al vervudt," etc.</i></p>

<p>The sentence of these six brethren and two sisters, we
obtained from the book of criminal sentences of the city of
Amsterdam, through the secretary of said place; excepting the
title which reads as follows</p>

<p class="c8">SENTENCE OF DEATH OF PIETER JANS, TOBIAS<br />
QUESTINEX, JAN PENNEWAERTS, GIJSBERT<br />
JANS, ELLERT JANS, LUCAS MICHIELS, BARBARA THIELEMAUS, AND<br />
TRUYKEN BOENS</p>

<p>Whereas Pieter, son of Jans, a native of Lininckhuysen,
Tobias Questinex, citizen of this city, shoemakers, by trade;
Jan Pennewaerts of Loenen, Gijsbert Jans of Woerden, Ellert
Jans, also citizen of this city, tailors, Lucas Michiels of
Dortrecht, glazier by trade, Barbara Thielemaus of Dortrecht,
and Truyken Boens, daughter of William Boens of</p>

</div><div id="485"> 

<p>Antwerp, have been rebaptized by one Giles of
Aix-la-Chapelle, and have joined the sect and heresy of the
Anabaptists, holding pernicious views with regards to the
sacraments of the holy church, contrary to the holy Christian
faith, the ordinances of said holy church, and the written laws
and decrees of his Imperial Majesty, our gracious lord; and,
moreover, obstinately persist in their unbelief, errors and
heresies; therefore, my lords the judges, having heard the
demand made by my lord the bailiff concerning said persons,
together with their confession, and having duly considered the
circumstances of said case, condemn said persons to be burnt by
the executioner; and, furthermore, declare all their property
confiscated for the benefit of his Imperial Majesty, as Count
of Holland and our gracious lord, without prejudice to the
privileges of this city. So pronounced and ordered to be
executed, this 20th day of March, 1549, in the presence of the
bailiff, Egbert Gabriels and Joost Buyck, burgomasters, and all
the judges.</p>

<p>Of these delinquents three were subjected to the torture,
namely, Tobias Questinex, on the 14th of Feliruary, Pieter
Jans, on the 15th of the same month, and Ellert Jans on the 8th
of the present month, March.</p>

<p>Extracted from the book of criminal sentences of the city of
Amsterdam, in the keeping of the secretary there.</p>

<p class="c8">N. N.</p>

<h2>FIJE AND EELKEN AT LEEUWARDEN, A. D. 1549</h2> 

<p>In the year 1549, about three weeks before Easter, two
beloved men, named Fije and Eelken, were apprehended at Boorn,
in West Friesland. They were brought before the lords, where
they boldlv confessed their faith.</p>

<p>They first interrogated Eelken, saying, "Who has authorized
you to assemble the people, to teach them?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "God has authorized me." Heb. 10:25.</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "What have you taught?"</p>

<p>Ans."Ask them that heard it, what we taught among ourselves;
for you have apprehended a woman that heard it."</p>

<p>They then asked the woman what she had heard from
Eelken.</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "He read the four Evangelists, Paul, Peter, the
epistles of John, and the acts of the, apostles."</p>

<p>Eelken was then asked again, "What do you hold concerning the
sacrament?"</p>

<p><i>Ans."I</i> know nothing of your baked God."</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "Friend, take care what you say; such words cost
necks. What do you think of the mother of God?"</p>

<p>Ans."Much."</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "What do you say; did the Son of God not receive
flesh and blood from Mary?"</p>

<p><i>Ans."No:</i> With regard to this, I believe what the Son
of God Himself declares concerning it." John 1:14.</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "What do you hold concerning our holy Roman
church?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "I know nothing of your holy church. I do not
know it; I never in all my life was in a holy church."</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "You speak too spitefully; I have compassion for
you," said one of the lords of the council,"and fear that you
will lose your neck. Are you not baptized?"</p>

<p><i>Ans."I</i> am not baptized, but greatly desire
baptism."</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "What do you think of these false teachers who
run about and baptize the people?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "Of false teachers I think nothing, but have
greatly longed to hear a teacher sent from God?"</p>

<p>They said, "But we have heard that you are a teacher?"</p>

<p>Eelken said, "Who made me a teacher?"</p>

<p>They replied, "We do not know."</p>

<p>Eelken said, "If you ask me what you do not know yourselves,
how should I know it? I know of no one that has made me a
teacher; but God has given me all for which I have besought
Him."</p>

<p>They said, "We have now written down all the articles
concerning which we have interrogated you on this occasion; if
there is anything of which you repent, we will gladly strike it
out I"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "Do you think that I should deny God?"</p>

<p>Eelken and Fije were then both sentenced and brought
together; they embraced each other, yea, kissed one another's
hands and feet with great love, so that all that saw and heard
it were astonished. The beadles and servants ran to the lords
and said, "Never men loved one another as do these." Eelken said
to Fije, "Dear brother, do not take it amiss, that you have been
brought into suffering through me." Fije answered, "Dear
brother, do not think so, for it is the power of God."</p>

<p>Their execution was deferred till the third day after the
sentence was passed. Eelken was first executed with the sword.
When Fije's sentence was read, he did not listen to it, because
of his great joy; and, ignorant of what had happened, or was to
happen, to Eelken, he sang and leaped; praising and thanking
God, saying, "This is the only way."</p>

<p>They led Fije into the boat in which Eelken lays beheaded,
and beside him the wheel upon which Eelken was to be placed,
and the stake at which Fije was to stand, to be burned. In the
boat Fije's hands became loose, but he sat still nevertheless.
The monks then said, "Bind him again." The hangman replied, "You
bind him." But the castellan commanded him to bind Fije again.
Some women who beheld it wept bitterly. But Fije said, "Weep not for me, but for your sins."</p>

<p>He further said to the executioner, "What are you going to do
to me?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "That you will see.", "Yea, yea," said Fije,"do what you will; I have committed
myself into the hands of my Lord."</p>

</div><div id="486"> 

<p>The brethren went out with him, together with the common.
people, and when Fije saw some of his acquaintances, he cried
out, "Friends, rejoice with me over this marriage feast which is
prepared for me.</p>

<p>When he arrived at the place of execution, some brethren,
who greatly rejoiced with him, spoke to him, saying, "This is
the narrow way; this is the Lord's wine press; from this
depends the crown." But when the castellan heard this cry, he
called out, "Let no man lay his hands on him, on pain of life, and
property."</p>

<p>The executioner had forgotten his instruments, and ran to
the town to get them. In the meantime, the castellan and the
two monks had Fije in the confessional, greatly tempting him
with bread and wine; but they could not prevail upon him, for
Fije did nothing but sing and speak, praising and thanking
God.</p>

<p>When they could not prevail on him, and the executioner
returned, they said to Fije, "How is it that you are so
obstinate, when you say that you are a member of Christ? Why
then will you not do the works of mercy, and receive this bread
and wine as bread and wine, for our sakes."</p>

<p>Am."I do not hunger for.your bread and wine; for there is
food prepared for me in heaven."</p>

<p>When they could not prevail upon him, they said, "Begone, you
heretic, begone!"</p>

<p>The castellan said, "I have seen many a heretic; but in all
my life I never saw a more obdurate one than,this."</p>

<p>Fije, standing prepared for death, said to the
executioner, "Master, have you finished your work?"</p>

<p>He replied, "Not yet."</p>

<p>Fije said, "Here is the sheep for which you are wanted."</p>

<p>The executioner, then went up to Fije, tore open his shirt,
took the cap from his head, and filled it with gunpowder.
Standing at the stake at which he was to be strangled, Fije
exclaimed, "O Lord, receive Thy servant."</p>

<p>He was then strangled and burnt, and thus fell asleep in the
Lord. The common people cried out saying, "This was a pious
Christian; if he is not a Christian, there is not one in the
whole world."</p>

<h2>JACOB CLAESS OF LANTSMEER, AND CECILIA JERONYMUS HIS WIFE, BURNT IN GREAT CONSTANCY FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS<br />
CHRIST, AT AMSTERDAM, IN THE<br />
YEAR 1549*</h2> 

<p>The tribulation, anguish and distress of the beloved friends
and children of God continued; for they did not cease to
persecute and kill them, yea, to put them to death in a
dreadful, miserable and lamentable manner, which, in the year
1549, ap-</p>

<br /><cite>*We have had some doubts as to whether these two
persons were not the same ones who, under the names of Jacob
and Se1i, have been noticed previously, for the year 1542, and
whom we allowed to remain there; but as we find some contrary
circumstances, we took cause to regard them as not the same,
but different persons; hence we have put them here in their
proper place.</cite> 

<p>peared also in the city of Amsterdam, in Holland, in the
case of two pious and very God-fearing persons, named Jacob
Claess of Lantsmeer, and Cecilia Jeronymus of Wormer, who, as
they, after suffering many assaults, conflicts and tribulations
from secular as well as ecclesiastical persons, who sought to
draw them away from the faith, remained constant, were.
sentenced to the fire as heretics, which punishment of death
they steadfastly endured, on the 9th of November, A. D. 1549,
as appears from the following two sentences, which were
publicly pronounced on the day of their death, in the court of
Amsterdam; true copies of which, obtained by us through the
clerk of the court there, we shall adduce here, for the further
confirmation of said matter.</p>

<h2>SENTENCE OF DEATH OF JACOB CLAESS OF LANTSMEER</h2> 

<p>Whereas Jacob Claess of Lantsmeer has joined the doctrine,
sect and heresies of the Anabaptists, having been rebaptized,
and holding pernicious views in regard to the sacraments of the
holy church, contrary to the holy Christian faith, the
ordinances of the holy Christian church, and the written laws
and decrees of his Imperial Majesty our gracious lord; and,
moreover, obstinately persists in his errors and heresy,
notwithstanding the instruction which has been given him
concerning the true faith; therefore, my lords the judges,
having heard the demand made by my lord the bailiff, in the
name of his Imperial Majesty, concerning said Jacob Claess,
together with his confession, and having considered the
circumstances of said case, sentence said Jacob Claess,
pursuant to the aforesaid decrees, to be burnt by the
executioner, and, furthermore, declare his property confiscated
for the benefit of his Imperial Majesty, as Count of Holland.
So pronounced, and executed by the executioner, on the 9th of
November, A. D. 1549, in the presence of the bailiff, Sir
Hendrick Dirks; burgomaster, Jan Willems; Claes Meeuwess,
Simon, Claess Kops, Florus Marts, Jan Claess van oppen, and
Hendrick Jans Croock, Judges.</p>

<p>Jacob Claess was subjected to the torture on the 22d of
October, A. D. 1549.</p>

<p>Extracted from the book of criminal sentences, in the
keeping of the secretary of the city of Amsterdam.</p>

<p class="c8">N. N.</p>

<h2>SENTENCE OF DEATH OF CECILIA JERONYMUS</h2> 

<p>Whereas Cecilia, daughter of Jeronymus, of Wormer, has
joined the doctrine, sect and heresies of the Anabaptists,
having been rebaptized, and holding pernicious views in regard
to the sacraments of the holy church, contrary to the holy
Christian faith, the ordinances of the holy Christian church,
the written laws and decrees of his Imperial Majesty our
gracious lord, and, moreover, obstinately persists in her
errors and heresies, notwithstanding the instruction which
has</p>

</div><div id="487"> 

<p>been given her concerning the true faith; therefore, my
lords the judges, having heard the demand made by my lord the
bailiff, in .the name of his Imperial Majesty, concerning said
Cecilia, together with her confession, and having maturely
considered the circumstances of said case, sentence said
Cecilia Jeronymus, pursuant to the aforesaid decrees, to be
burnt by the executioner, and, furthermore, declare her
property confiscated for the benefit of his Imperial Majesty,
as Count of Holland. Done and executed as above.</p>

<p>Extracted from the book of criminal sentences, in the
keeping of the secretary of the city of Amsterdam.</p>

<p class="c8">N. N.</p>

<h1>HANS VAN OVERDAM PUT TO DEATH AT GHENT; ALSO HIS CONFESSION, WRITTEN IN PRISON, AND AFTERWARDS SEALED WITH HIS  BLOOD, IN THE YEAR 1550</h1>

<p>Hans van Overdam, together with his fellow prisoners for the
testimony of Jesus Christ, wishes all brethren and sisters in
the Lord, grace, peace, and an ardent love, from God the
Father, and the Lord Jesus Christ, to whom be praise, honor,
and majesty forever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>My most dearly beloved, grieve not on my account (Eph.
3:13), but praise the Lord that He is so good a Father to me,
that I can suffer bonds and imprisonment for the testimony of
Christ, for which I also hope to go into the fire. The Lord
give me strength through His Holy Spirit. Amen. Walk in the
fear of the Lord, even as you are called. I Cor. 7:17. And
though we see one another no more in the flesh, may we behold
each other hereafter, in the kingdom of our Father, where I
hope soon to be: The peace of the Lord be with you. Amen.</p>

<p>O dear brethren and sisters in the Lord, my heart's deepest
desire and prayer is (Rom. 10:1), that you may constantly give
more and more diligence to make sure the calling whereunto.you
are called by God the Father, through Christ, to the majesty
and glory of the kingdom 'of His beloved Son, who purchased His
church with His own blood, and gave Himself for it; that He
might sanctify and cleanse it with the washing of water by the
word, that He might present it to Himself a glorious church,
not having spot or wrinkle, or any such thing; but that it
should be holy and without blemish. Eph. 5:25-27.</p>

<p>Therefore, O dear friends, mark here what great love the
Father has shown us, that He did not spare His only begotten
Son, and how Christ so willingly delivered Himself up, and
suffered the most ignominious and shameful death of the cross,
and shed His precious blood, for us, to wash and cleanse us
from our sins. O dear brethren and sisters, let us take heed,
and diligently pray and watch, lest the saving grace of God,
and the unspeakable love of the Father, and of Christ, be
neglected or forgotten by us (Heb. 12:15) , through the cares
andanxieties of this world, or through the lusts and desires
which kill the soul, and we be washed and scoured off as spots
and wrinkles from the glorious church of Christ; yea, cut off
as unfruitful branches, and destined to the fire. For, my most
beloved, it- is not enough, that we have received baptism upon
faith, and been engrafted by it into Christ, if we do not hold
the beginning of our confidence Steadfast unto the end. Heb.
3:14. Therefore, if there is any one that feels that he is
become a spot or wrinkle, let him see to it that he make haste,
before the day come upon him, as the snare upon the bird; let
him repent with true sorrow and penitence, lift up the hands
which hang down, and the feeble knees, .and run with full
strength the race that is set before him, lest that which is
lame be turned out of the way; but that it may much rather be
healed and strengthened, that we may pass the time of our
sojourning here in the fear of God, and keep ourselves
unspotted from this wicked evil world, which is full of deceit,
snares, and nets, which the devil sets for the purpose of
seducing the souls of men, and of taking them captive by
manifold lusts and wiles.</p>

<p>O Lord,.preserve (from this murderer) Thy pilgrims who walk
in the hope of Thee, and expect their help and comfort from
Thee alone. O, heavenly Father, through Jesus Christ our Lord,
preserve us that Thou mayest perform the good work which Thou
hast begun in us, to the praise and glory of Thy holy name. O
Thou Almighty and everlasting God, how utterly incomprehensible
is Thy grace and fatherly mercy upon those that fear and love
Thee.. O Father, who should not fear such a God, who knows how
to deliver His own; though they may seem to be forsaken here
for a little season, despised of all men, rejected and-cursed
on this earth; yet He does not forsake His own through the
consolation of His Holy Spirit in our hearts, who makes us bold
and joyful, that we may suffer reproach for His name. And we
hope through the goodness of God; that our pilgrimage will soon
end, and we shall be delivered from this miserable world and
vale of tears, and that this earthly house of our tabernacle
will be dissolved, that we may be brought home to our heavenly
Father, and receive the crown of everlasting life, which is set
before us, and which we hope no creature shall take from us. To
this end, may the Almighty and eternal God, the merciful
Father, strengthen us through Jesus Christ our Lord. Amen.</p>

<p>Dear friends, let me tell you, how it went with me before my
imprisonment, and how they treated us after my
imprisonment.</p>

<p>At the time when the four friends concerning whom I composed
the hymn, and whose burning I witnessed, were offered up, I
heard it stated that they had. assailed the friends who yet
remained in prison, with great cunning and deception, through
the advice of the false prophets, whose minds are constantly
filled with the subtlety of the devil, even as they had boasted
that they would do. Our</p>

</div><div id="488"> 

<p>friends that remained there, were two lads and a girl, for
whom we daily very diligently prayed the Lord, fearing, lest
they might by some means be moved from the faith. We daily
expected that they would also be put to death, and because of
their youth I was impelled in my heart to station myself at the
scaffold, when they were to be put to death, in order that, if
they should be troubled on any account, I might comfort them,
and also reprove the monks, who greatly distress and vex our
friends when they are led to death. But, alas! the poor
children did not get so far; for they imprudently allowed
themselves to be drawn into disputations with the false
prophets, though they had been sufficiently warned to beware of
it as they valued their souls; for it is not given to everyone
to dispute, but boldly to confess the faith. This when received
from the Lord, well becomes Christians.</p>

<p>But when these poor lambs engaged in controversy, they
became perplexed in their consciences, and apostatized from the
truth, which gave the false prophets cause for great boasting,
since they had won their souls, and brought them back to the
holy church. When I heard this, my soul and spirit were greatly
grieved on account of the loss of-the poor sheep, and because
the false prophets, and also the councilors gloried so much in
the fall and destruction of the poor lambs and children, whom
they had driven to this by adjuring them as you shall hear in
the sequel.</p>

<p>Being thus sorrowful, I sighed and complained to God over
the violence and power of the devil, which he exerts through
the children of unbelief. Then the thought came to me, to write
a few letters-for the purpose of informing them in several
places-reprehending their vain joy over the loss of the poor
lambs whose souls they had murdered. I then began to write, and
while thus engaged, my soul was so kindled, that what I had
intended to be a little letter of a handbreadth, became a
letter of a whole leaf. The Lord opened my understanding, so
that in a wonderful manner I proved to the lords, by references
to the Scriptures, their punishment with the whole Roman Empire
and its end. In the letter I wrote, that I desired and
requested liberty publicly to dispute with all their learned
men, in the presence of a great fire, into which the defeated
party should be cast; also, that they should let the poor lambs
in peace, and that they should leave the sword to the secular
power, and contend with the Word of God.</p>

<p>Having completed this letter,' I showed it to the brethren,
who were well pleased with it. I then had a brother, who was a
better writer than I, make six copies of it. In the meantime,
the poor, ruined lambs were released from prison, and recanted
everything. One of the lads died the same day on which he came
out, a league from the city, and thus became an example to
those who seek to save their life.</p>

<p>At the time that this occurred I came with Hansken
Keeskooper from Antwerp, and we made allour arrangements for
the disposing of our letters. On Saturday evening we sent the
letters to the lords of the city, and also posted two open ones
in the middle of the city, that everyone might read them. We
greatly praise and thank the Lord, that we did this before we
were apprehended: for we were all betrayed by a Judas, who was
among us, and who seemed to be one of the most pious of all the
brethren that were there, so successfully could he practice his
deception. It had long been his aim, as we now perceive, to
betray a large number of the friends. This traitor was present
when the letters were posted. We had appointed to meet together
on Sunday morning, to speak of the word of the Lord: for I
desired to take leave of the brethren, intending to go on a
journey the next day. But the Lord be praised, who had ordered
it otherwise. Early in the morning, Hansken went with me to the
woods where we were to assemble. We did not find our friends at
the place where we expected to meet them. We hunted for them a
good half hour, and came to the conclusion that they had not
yet come, as there had been a heavy rain the evening before. We
were about to turn back; when I .said, "Let us go; they may be
here ahead of us," and sang softly; that, if they were there,
they might hear us. I then heard a rustling in the woods, and
said to Hansken, "Our friends are here." We stood still, and
looked to see who should come out. Then three men with weapons
and sticks came forth.</p>

<p>I said, "Well, boys, have you been hunting a hare, and have
not caught it?"</p>

<p>Their faces turned pale as death, and they stepped up to us,
and seized me by the arm, saying, "Surrender."</p>

<p>Thus they apprehended us, saying, "We have caught a great
number besides."</p>

<p>We then saw a whole wagon full of our brethren sitting
bound, and three judges with all their servants, a great
number, who guarded them. When we came to them, we saluted our
brethren with the peace of the Lord, and comforted them with
His words, boldly to contend for His name.</p>

<p>We then reproved the judges for being so desirous of
shedding innocent blood. Thereupon they coupled Hansken and me
together with iron fetters, and also our thumbs. We expected
they would take us to the city; but as we had been apprehended
in another seigniory, we had to go half a league further. We
regarded it as very fortunate that we could be together so
long, thus being enabled to comfort one another on the way,
with the Word of the Lord, before they separated us.</p>

<p>We were then taken to a castle, a league from the city,
where we were all kept together in one room, remaining there
three days; for this was the law of the seigniory where we had
been apprehended. There we thanked and praised the Lord our God
for having ordered it so well, that we had so much time freely
to admonish one another. Much people also came from the city,
to see and hear us;</p>

</div><div id="489"> 

<p>but towards the last no one was permitted to come into our
room. There the chief bailiff of the country of Aelst examined
us in regard to our faith, which we freely confessed to him. We
expected to be taken to Aelst; but as the bailiff of Ghent had
put us into the wagon when we were apprehended, to take us to
Ghent, all of us had to be taken to that city. The traitor who
had betrayed us, was apprehended with us, that we might not
notice it. He was put into a separate room, and we felt much
compassion for him, because he could not be with us; for we
knew not that he was our betrayer. He was also taken along in
the wagon, to the prison at Ghent, where we first learned that
he had betrayed us.</p>

<p>When we were brought out of the castle, to be taken to the
city, much people had come from the city to see us; there my
brother's wife, who was a sister, was apprehended, because she
spoke to me, and was put into the wagon; also a man who wished
us Godspeed. We freely spoke to the people that had come,
telling them that those who would turn from wickedness, and
follow Christ, had to be a prey for everyone. Isa. 59:15. There
were many who would have liked to talk with us, but did not
dare do so, because of the wicked judges. There were ten of us;
two were ready [for baptism], and four were novices; the other
two were apprehended because they spoke to us. Thus they took
two wagon loads to the city, in broad daylight. On the way,
they also apprehended a woman, only because she said to us, "God
keep you." She also had to sit in the wagon. But if they had
apprehended all who spoke to us when we came into the city, and
to whom we replied with the Word of God, they could not have
carried them in twenty wagons, as the people came running from
every corner which we passed; as water which runs down from the
mountains, and becomes a large stream, so the people flowed
together, which continued from one of the gates of the city to
the castle of the count, which stands at the other end of the
city, a walking distance of about one hour. We were led up to
the castle, and the judge of the country of Aelst, delivered us
over into the hands of the lords of the Imperial Council. Here
we were separately confined, some into upper rooms. The women
also remained above; but eleven of us were led into a gloomy,
deep dungeon, containing divers dark cells built of masonry, in
which we were put in separate parties of three and three. But
Hansken and I. were put into the darkest of all, in which there
was a small quantity of crumbled straw, about an apron full,
with which we might help ourselves. I said, "It seems to me that
we are with Jonah in the whale's belly, so dark it is here; we
may well cry with Jonah to the Lord, that He will be our
comforter and deliverer; for we are now deprived of all human
comfort and assistance." This did not defect us, but we praised
and thanked God, that we were permitted to surer for His name.
We also spoke to our brethren that lay in other cells; for
wecould easily hear each other speaking. After we had lain
there for three or four days, Hansken and I were both summoned
before the lords, where we were examined, and interrogated
concerning the ground of our faith, and when we had been
baptized.</p>

<p>The Lord then, according to His promise, gave us a mouth, to
speak boldly, and we requested to be allowed publicly to defend
ourselves with the Word of God. They replied to us, that they
would send us learned men, who would instruct us; whereupon we
were taken below again.</p>

<p>Shortly after, I was taken above into another room, to two
councilors and a clerk. There they interrogated me very
closely, where I had been, and if I knew that I had been
banished six years ago, in the time of Martin Huereblock, and
where we had held our meetings; all of which they knew, for the
traitor had already told them. I said, "Why do you ask me, who
have come from foreign countries?" (For I purposely did not
wish to ask much, that, in case I should be apprehended, I
might not have much to answer.)"Why do you question me so
closely? Have you not yet enough innocent blood to shed? Do you
thirst for still more?""Ask as closely as you want to," said
I;"the righteous judge shall ask you again, if you do not
repent."</p>

<p>They then asked me still more, and adjured me by my baptism,
that I should tell them;"For," said they,"we know that you
people do not lie; hence tell us."</p>

<p>I said, "That you know that we do not lie, is to us a
testimony of salvation, but to you of perdition (Phil. 1:28),
because you put such to death; but your adjuration has no power
against the truth."</p>

<p>All that I said was written down, and they threatened to
torture me if I would not tell them everything. I said, "I can
not tell you what I do not know." Thus they tormented me for a
very long time. Thereupon I was taken below again. In this
manner they dealt with all our friends, with each
separately.</p>

<p>One Saturday I was taken above again into the same room.
Four monks were present; the guardian of the Minorites, with
another, and the Superior of the Jacobines, with another. With
me there came a young brother, who had not yet received
baptism, but was ready for it.</p>

<p>When I had seated myself, I asked them what they wished.
They said they were sent by the lords, to instruct us, and to
converse with us concerning the ground and articles of faith. I
replied that I was ready to be instructed with the Word of God,
and to hold converse concerning the ground and articles of
faith, and this publicly, in the presence of the judges who
were to judge us, and of our brethren and sisters that were
imprisoned with us.</p>

<p>Arcs."This they will not permit."</p>

<p><i>Hans van Overdaw.</i> "Well, let them do what they please;
we will not dispute secretly and alone, lest our words be
perverted behind our backs."</p>

</div><div id="490"> 

<p><i>Ans.</i> "We will not pervert your words."</p>

<p><i>Hans.</i> "No, we know you well."</p>

<p>Ques."What do you take us for? What evil did we ever do you?
Pray, tell us what evil do you know of us?"</p>

<p><i>Hans.</i> "If you would know it then; I regard you as
false prophets and seducers."</p>

<p>Here we got into a dispute concerning their spiritual
semblance, and the command of the pope regarding the purity of
the priests and monks, and why they were called spiritual, and
others secular, when all ought to be spiritual.</p>

<p>They then said, "This is not profitable; let us dispute about
the articles of faith."</p>

<p>Thereupon I said, "What I have said I have said."</p>

<p>They replied that they would tell it to the lords. Thus we
separated, having disputed with each other for fully two hours.
Two days after, Hansken and I were summoned before the lords;
the four monks were present, and attempted to engage us in a
disputation.</p>

<p>I then said to the lords, "My lords, I ask you, in what house
are we, in a house of justice, or of violence?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "In a house of justice."</p>

<p><i>Hans.</i> "God grant that it be so; but, my lords, of what
do you accuse us, that you keep us imprisoned and confined like
thieves and murderers? Have we wronged any one, or do you
charge us with violence, murder, or roguery?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "No; we know no such thing of you."</p>

<p><i>Hans.</i> "Well, my lords, why then have you imprisoned
us?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "Your adversaries will tell you that."</p>

<p><i>Hans.</i> "Are you our adversaries?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "No, but we are judges."</p>

<p>I then said to the monks, "Are you our adversaries?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "No."</p>

<p><i>Haw.</i> "Well, if no one is our adversary, why are we
imprisoned?"</p>

<p>A councilor then said, "The Emperor is your adversary."</p>

<p><i>Hans.</i> "We have not offended against his Imperial
Majesty according to the power which he has received from God,
and will obey him in every ordinance, as far as we can do so
consistently with the truth."</p>

<p>Councilor."You have held meetings of this new doctrine, and
the Emperor has commanded that this should not be done."</p>

<p><i>Hams.</i> "God has not authorized him to make such
commandments; in this he transcends the power which God has
given him, and in this we do not recognize his supremacy; for
the salvation of our souls concerns us more, so that we show
obedience to God."</p>

<p>The monks then said, "We are your adversaries, in that your
doctrine is not good; for if it were good, you would not preach
in woods and corners, but openly."</p>

<p>Hans then said, "Grant us a. free place in the market, or in
your monasteries and churches, and see whether we then shall go
into the woods; but no, you are afraid that you would be
reproved; hence you have brought it about, that you cannot be
reproved, and have driven us from cities and countries."</p>

<p><i>Monks.</i> "Alas! we have not done it; the Emperor does
it."</p>

<p><i>Hans."You</i> have urged him to it."</p>

<p><i>Monks.</i> "We have not."</p>

<p>The lords also then began to speak against us, why we were
not content with the faith of our parents, and with our
baptism.</p>

<p>We replied, "We know of no infant baptism, but of a baptism
upon faith, concerning which the Word of God teaches us."</p>

<p>We then had many other words, and reproved them for
undertaking to be judges in matters of faith, when they did not
understand the Scriptures."If you would be judges, be
impartial, and let the matter proceed in regular order; let
both parties appear together, and let our brethren and sisters
that have been brought prisoners here together with us, be with
us. Then one of us, whose mouth the Lord shall open, will
speak, and the others shall listen in silence while he is
speaking; and thus shall also our adversaries do."</p>

<p><i>Lords:</i> "We will not let you come together; we would
have you dispute alone here."</p>

<p>We then said, "My lords, it would be the most convenient for
you, and the whole matter could be finished with one
disputation; otherwise you will</p>

<p>constantly have to dispute anew with one or two at a
time."</p>

<p><i>Lords.</i> "What then? We will not have it so."</p>

<p>Then a councilor said, "They want to have them together, in
order to seduce one another still more; therefore they cannot
be allowed to come together."</p>

<p><i>Hans.</i> "My lords, you say that you are judges, but we
regard you as our adversaries; for you seek to injure us in
every way, and to cause us and our brethren by violence and
subtlety, to apostatize from our faith."</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "Why should we not do this, in order to bring
them back?"</p>

<p><i>Hans.</i> "Well, my lords, hear this: since we see that
you are no judges, but our adversaries, and employ, wherever
you can; all violence and subtlety, to your advantage, and our
detriment: Firstly, you have by violence deprived us of our
testaments, in which we find our consolation; secondly, you
have confined us separately, some in deep, dark dungeons,
others in rooms up above; and thirdly, you seek to outwit and
deceive us by separate disputations, afterwards to say behind
our backs, to our brethren, that you had overcome us, and,
<i>vice versa,</i> to say the same to us concerning our
brethren and sisters; therefore, my lords, we will not dispute
here, unless our brethren and sisters are present."</p>

</div><div id="491"> 

<p>When they heard that their design against us did not proceed
according to their wish, they became greatly enraged, and also
the monks. We saw easily enough to what it amounted, and that
all they did was pure deception; for though it was proved by
the Scriptures, with regard to several articles, that they were
in the wrong, yet they would not acknowledge it, and excused
themselves with the Emperor and his mandates, and the monks
with the long continued customs of the Roman church (Wisdom
14:16), and the great number of our forefathers: and when the
contrary had been proven to them from the Scriptures, it was
just as before, even as though one should have talked to the
stove.</p>

<p>We then said, "My lords, will you not permit us, to dispute
in regular order, as we have requested?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "No.", "Well then," said we,"You know the ground of our faith,
which we have freely confessed to you; you may now do with us
as you please (Jer. 26:14), as far as God will permit; but take
good heed what you do, for there is a judge still higher than
you. Eph. 6:9. May the Lord open the eyes of your
understanding, that you may see how miserably you are seduced
and deceived by the false prophets, indeed so that you fight
against God and the Lamb, for which it will go hard with you,
unless you, repent."</p>

<p>We were then led away again, as we would not dispute
further; for we had agreed upon this, when we were together yet
in the castle, out of the city, lest they should take the
simple unawares by disputations. Hence they.could not persuade
any that they had overcome them, all knowing that they were not
to dispute, except in the presence of the others, in which case
the disputation would tend to the consolation and admonition of
our brethren and sisters who should hear it; for when we saw
that they did their best we would not let anything be wanting
on our part, seeing necessity demanded it. When they perceived
that this did 'not promise success, they tried another scheme.
They sent a councilor and two friars,:a grey and a black, into
a room, before whom a brother or sister, one at a time, were
brought, to dispute with them and to defend the ground of their
faith; but they declared that they would not dispute alone in a
room, but openly, when we should be together before the lords.
They then said, "We adjure you by your faith and baptism, that
you dispute here." The brother replied, "I know my faith and
baptism</p>

<p>but with your adjuration I have nothing to do; hence let us
come together; for this is just what we wish, to dispute openly
with you, but not thus alone in a room." Another'was then
summoned, and thus it went until all had' been brought before
them; but no one would dispute in this manner. Thereupon I also
had to appear alone in a room, before a councilor and two
monks, who likewise began to adjure me. I then said, "Why
wouldyou adjure me, to cast roses before dogs, and pearls
before swine, that you may trample on them? No, this the Lord
has forbidden me to do. Matt. 7:6. Nay, I esteem the words of
God far too precious, than that I should -let the light shine
in vain here, whereby no one would be enlightened, but it would
only be blasphemed and mocked, as you do when the truth is told
you."</p>

<p>Then they adjured me still much more; but I replied, "Why do
you adjure so much? I care not for your adjuration; for it is
the manner of sorcerers, who adjure against the truth. II
Chron. 33:6. But I now see clearly, how the souls of our two
brethren and sisters were murdered and seduced (Ezek. 13:19),
it was through your sorcerous adjuration, as they did not guard
themselves against the subtlety of the devil, and had not the
gift to dispute."</p>

<p>The guardian then said, "You boasted in your letter, that you
would dispute publicly; why do you not dare do it now?"</p>

<p><i>Hans."You</i> monk, I still desire with all my heart to
defend my faith with the Word of God, publicly before all men
(I Pet. 3:15); but your cap would shake quite differently, if
you had to dispute with me at the risk of the fire, and if the
authorities would not protect you."</p>

<p><i>Councilor.</i> "No, we have no desire to let you dispute
publicly; you are now in our hands."</p>

<p><i>Hans."I</i> desired it, before I knew that I should fall
into your hands; but I see well now, that I have fallen into
the talons of the eagle (II Esd. 11), and whoever gets into
them cannot escape without losing soul or body."</p>

<p><i>Councilor.</i> "Who is the eagle, the Emperor?"</p>

<p><i>Hans."No,</i> it is the Roman Empire or power; read the
letter I wrote you; it will tell you."</p>

<p>We then exchanged many more words, and the monks became
angry at me, and commenced to utter puffed-up words. I then
said that Paul had prophesied correctly concerning them, that
they were blasphemers, proud, and puffed up. II Tim. 3:2.</p>

<p>Thereupon friar Jan de Croock became so enraged that he
began to cry, "Fools, fools, heretics, heretics are you!"</p>

<p>Hans."Behold, is this, not a fine teacher? but Paul says
that a teacher must not be a brawler, nor angry." I Tim. 3:3;
Tit. 1:7. The councilor felt ashamed that the monk acted so
disgracefully, and commanded him to be silent.</p>

<p>At another subsequent time there came two secular priests:
Sir Willem of Nieuwenland, and the parish priest of St.
Michael. I asked them what they desired. They replied, "We have
come to seek your soul." This time I kept under cover as much
as I could, in hopes that we might dispute openly before the
lords, as they told me that they would use their best endeavors
in this direction. But when I heard that it could not be, I
thought, when they came again with the clerk, we must accost
each other in quite a different way, from what</p>

</div><div id="492"> 

<p>we did the last time. I then asked, "What do you wish?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "We desire'that you suffer yourself to be
instructed; for, behold, we seek your soul."</p>

<p><i>Hans."Do you</i> then take so much pains to seek
souls?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "Yes."</p>

<p><i>Hans.</i> "Well then, go into the city, to every place, to
the drunkards, whoremongers, swearers, railers, covetous,
proud, idolaters, revellers, gluttons, and murderers, who shed
innocent blood; ail these are still your brethren; go, seek
their souls; Christ has found mine."</p>

<p>Ans."We admonish them, and then we have delivered our
souls."</p>

<p><i>Hans.</i> "That is not enough; you must go to them, and
reprove them, and if they will not hear you, you must bring
them before the church, and reprove them openly; if they still
refuse to hear, exclude them from the church, and let them be
unto you as heathen and open sinners, as Christ teaches, and
Paul writes to the Corinthians. Reprove also your judges, who
do violence and injustice, yea, who shed innocent blood."</p>

<p>One of the priests then said, "Should we go and reprove the
magistrates?"</p>

<p>I asked whether God was a respecter of persons.</p>

<p>Ans."No."</p>

<p><i>Hans.</i> "Would you be a minister of God, and have
respect to persons?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "This would cause an uproar in the city, and they
would kill us."</p>

<p><i>Hans.</i> "Then suffer for righteousness' sake."</p>

<p>But it seemed to me they had no great desire to suffer for
it. In short, we treated so much of the ban, that if the words
of Christ and Paul were followed, the pope, prelates, emperor
and king, yea, they themselves with all their multitude would
be excluded, and only a very small number remain.</p>

<p>I then told them that their house was all on fire, kindled
by the flames of hell, and that they should first extinguish
that, before coming to see whether our house was in danger of
fire. Whereupon they went away; one of the priests came no
more. In this manner I dealt also with Sir Anthony van Hille;
he tormented the others, but let me alone.</p>

<p>Herewith I commend my dear brethren and sisters in the Lord
into the hands of the Almighty God and Father; through Jesus
Christ our Lord. Amen.</p>

<p>Written while in prison for the testimony of Christ. I lay
in a dark dungeon for a month; I am now in a deep, round hole,
where there is a little more light, and here I have written
this letter. I hope to offer up my sacrifice this week, if it
is the Lord's will, together with those whom the Lord has
foreordained thereto; for if it does not take place this week,
it will no doubt be deferred for two months yet, because no
court will be held for six weeks. Know, that our brethren and
sisters are of good cheer and courage, through the grace of the
Lord; God be praised for it. I beseech you, by the brotherly
love which you bear to me, that you send this letter to
Friesland, particularly to Emdenland; I mean this same letter,
as soon as you can; you may copy it, but make haste with it. I
kindly desire that it be preserved, so that it may not be torn
or soiled. The brethren that are in the dungeon with me, greet
you all with the peace of God. We daily pray to the Lord for
you; do so also for us. Walk in the peace of the Lord, and it
will be well with you. When this letter has been read, send it
to Antwerp, that it may be sent to the church at Emden, so that
it may be read to everyone; this I desire of my dear brethren,
through the brotherly love which you bear to me.</p>

<h2>A LETTER BY HANS VAN OVERDAM, WHICH HE<br />
SENT TO THE LORDS OF THE LAW, AT GHENT<br />
AND TO THE COUNCILORS, THE DAY<br />
BEFORE HIS APPREHENSION</h2> 

<p class="c3">Understand well:</p>

<p>He that bath ears to hear, let him hear, and he that reads,
let him attend, and judge with the understanding of the holy
Scriptures; but woe to him that judges without understanding.
Hearken, I speak to you, O carnal generation, you Ishmaelites,
who boast of being Christians, because you are born of water
without the Spirit, and persecute the children of the promise,
who, through faith in the Word of God, are born of the water
and of the Spirit; yea, you persecute them, as Ishmael
persecuted Isaac, as Esau did Jacob, and as the Jews persecuted
Christ. Even so the antichristians, who are born of the flesh,
now persecute the Christians, who are born of the Spirit, who
shall receive the promise of the everlasting kingdom through
Christ, who is the heir of all things, .and causes His kingdom
to be proclaimed through the Gospel, unto repentance and true
sorrow for dead works, through faith in Him; they contemn his
witnesses, etc. This is the wind, O eagle, mark! which bloweth
where it listeth, and thou canst not tell whence it cometh, or
whither it goeth. Hear now His voice, which the Most High has
reserved unto the latter times, to reveal to thee thy
transgressions and punishment, who now begins to deliver His
people through much misery and tribulation.</p>

<p>Therefore, mark! O thou eagle, the end of thy time is very
nigh; art thou not the fourth beast? Oh, yes, thou art the
beast seen by Daniel (Dan. 7:7), which devoured everything with
his iron teeth, and stamped the residue with his feet, and
brought forth the most wicked little horn. Dan. 7:7, 8. Thou
hast dwelt a long time upon the earth with deceit, and hast not
judged the earth with truth. For thou hast afflicted the meek,
thou hast hurt the peaceable, thou hast loved liars, and
destroyed the dwellings of them that brought forth fruit, and
hast cast down the walls of such as did thee no harm. Therefore
is thy wrongful dealings come up unto the Highest, and thy
pride unto the</p>

</div><div id="493"> 

<p>Mighty. And therefore appear no more, thou eagle, that the
earth may be refreshed, and may return, being delivered from
thy violence, and that she may hope for the judgment and mercy
of Him that made her, whose judgment shall be better and more
just than thine, O thou eagle 1 Therefore, shall thy wicked
heads which remain to the last, be the end of the eagle to
accomplish his most wicked wickedness, together with his wicked
feathers, which also are kept unto the last. Therefore hear,
vain body of eagle, who vainly boast of what you are not,
namely, Christians. Hear also, you most wicked claws, which are
willing and ready to destroy and rend what your most wicked
heads command you, through the counsel of liars, whom they
love. Why do you rejoice in the misery and fall of the poor
lambs and sucklings, who feed still on milk, and whom you keep
imprisoned with violence, and whose souls you murder with
false, deceitful wiles; who have heard the truth only a year or
two at the most; you have none as yet, that can instruct you in
all the articles of faith? Be ashamed of your boasting, that
through your carnal, blind, learned men you have overcome the
innocent, with subtle, deceitful wiles and broken Scriptures.
Oh, woe, woe! for the great misery and the terrible times, that
wickedness has gained so much the upper hand, that truth is not
permitted as much as openly to defend itself. Let the misery,
violence, and great distress of the pregnant and the sucklings
of these times ascend to the ears of the Most High, because no
help, comfort, or assistance can be rendered them by those whom
the Lord has endowed with more grace and gifts to stop the
mouths of adversaries.</p>

<p>But perhaps you say, "Let them come forward then, that are
better endowed, and have received more grace." To this we
reply, that the wolf might call for a long while before the
sheep would come; they well knowing that he would tear them
with great cruelty, and without right and reason. Alas, alas!
what awful judgment and terrible punishment from the fierce and
devouring wrath of God shall fall upon those who without mercy
distress, persecute and murder the innocent and God-fearing,
and themtelves live so ungodly in all the unrighteous works of
the flesh, so that they shall not inherit the kingdom of
heaven. O thou spiritual Babylon, how shall the Lord visit and
avenge upon you the innocent souls and the blood of His
witnesses; for all this is found in thee. Thou bast made the
kings of the earth, and all nations, so drunken with the wine
of spiritual whoredom, that they can neither see nor hear the
truth., Oh, that we might once freely defend ourselves publicly
with the Word of God, in the presence of a large, flaming fire,
against all you learned doctors, licentiates, priests and
monks, who help strengthen, protect, preserve and maintain the
kingdom of antichrist, and that the vanquished party should be
cast into the fire; then it would not be necessary to torment
and distress the poor, innocent lambs, and yourfaith could be
tried, as to how it accords with the truth; then there would be
no need of washing the hands with Pilate, or of the imperial
mandate, and the authorities would remain free from the blood
of the innocent, if they would not let the Word of God be judge
over the faith. But no, the false prophets and deceivers well
know that their trickery and deceit would be made far too much
manifest thereby. Therefore they cry just as assiduously as did
the scribes and Pharisees;"Crucify him, crucify him." The
mandate of the emperor must prevail. Thus it was in the
beginning of the fourth beast, and so it is now at the end of
it. Let him that can comprehend with it, observe with
understanding, that the end is the worst of all., "Princess, repent and amend your ways; for the end of all
things is at hand. Woe unto you false prophets who resist the
truth, even as the Egyptian magicians resisted Moses; but your
wickedness shall yet be made manifest to all men, even as it
already begins. Woe unto you champion antichrist, who put on
the time-honored customs of the Roman church as an armor with
which to defend yourselves against the truth, and use the
mandate of the emperor as a shield, and wield the sword of the
magistracy, in every country to shed the innocent blood of
those who will not defend themselves with temporal or carnal
weapons, but only with the Word of God, which is our sword, and
which is sharp and two-edged. But we are daily greatly
slandered by those who say that we defend our faith with the
sword, as did those of Munster. May the Almighty God preserve
us from such abominations.</p>

<p>Be it known to you, noble lords, councilors, burgomasters
and judges, that we recognize your officers as right and good;
yea, as ordained and instituted of God, that is, the secular
sword for the punishment of evildoers, and the protection of
the good, and we desire to obey you in all taxes, tributes and
ordinances, as far as it is not contrary to God. And if you
find us disobedient in these things, we will willingly receive
our punishment as malefactors. God, who is acquainted with
every heart, knows that this is our intention. But understand.
ye noble lords, that the abuse of your stations or offices we
do not recognize to be from God, but from the devil, and that
antichrist, through the subtlety of the devil, has bewitched
and'blinded your eyes, so that you do not know yourselves, who
you are, and how sorely you have incurred the wrath of God. Be
sober, therefore, and awake, and open the eyes of your
understanding, and see against whom you fight, that it is not
against man, but against God. Therefore we will not obey you;
for it is the will of God, that we shall be tried thereby.
Hence we would rather, through the grace of God, suffer our
temporal bodies to be burned, drowned, beheaded, racked or
tortured, as it may seem good to you, or be scourged, banished,
or driven away, and robbed of our goods, than show you any
obedience contrary to the Word of God, and we will be pa-</p>

</div><div id="494"> 

<p>tient herein, committing vengeance to God; for we know Him
that hath said,"Vengeance belongeth unto me, I will recompense,
saith the Lord." And again,"The Lord shall judge his people. It
is a fearful thing to fall into the hands of the living God."
Hebrews 10:30, 31. And the spirit testifies, that this is at
hand, and has already commenced.</p>

<p>Hearken, thou whose time for bearing is half fulfilled:
Prepare thy bed.; for thou shalt bring forth. What shall I
bring forth? The fruit of thy labor, with pain and anguish, and
afterwards death. Hearken, thou on the right hand: Prepare the
measure. What shall I prepare it for? To measure thy neighbor,
and then shalt thou also be measured. Get thee ready, thou
fire, and do not tarry. Hearken, I speak to you who are of one
mind with the horns (Rev. 17:13), the day of your feast has
come, your meat is ready; eat quickly the fat flesh of the
drunken, that the power may be given to the beast. It has been
put into your hearts, so to do. After the beast you shall have
power for a little while. You fight against the Lamb, but the
Lamb shall overcome you; He is King of kings, and Lord of
lords, and His kingdom will endure .forever. Amen.</p>

<p>We testify of Him that it is He that shall come, yea, He
comes quickly, the Lord Jesus, who shall reward every man
according to his works.</p>

<h2>A LETTER OF JANNIJN BUEFKIJN, CALLED HANS<br />
KEESKOOPER, A NATIVE OF VERURCKE, WHICH<br />
HE WROTE WHILE IN PRISON AT GHENT<br />
A. D. 1550</h2> 

<p>A holy conversation, a living, spiritual faith, hope, and a
true evangelical confidence in God the Father, and the Lord
Jesus Christ, our only Helper and Saviour, I wish to my beloved
friends, for glad tidings and an affectionate salutation, that
through said faith and confidence in God you may grow up in a
new and pure life, which life is perceived and richly found in
the holy Gospel. Oh, blessed are they who purify and sanctify
themselves according to the tenor of the Gospel; without which
purification and sanctification no man shall see God nor the
Lord. Thus follow the advice of the Lord Jesus, who
says, "Search the Scriptures." John 5:39. I have done nothing
else; as I and my fellow prisoners said before the lords of the
Imperial Council; and they can not, in truth, bring any charge
against us. They asked us, me first, and then the others, one
after another, whether we were baptized.</p>

<p>I said, "Yes, my lords."</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "How long since?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "Four years, my lords, "</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "What do you hold concerning your baptism
received in infancy?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "Nothing at all, my lords."</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "Concerning the sacrament of the priests, do you
not believe that flesh and blood is there, and that it is
God?"</p>

<p>Ans."No my lords, how should it be flesh and blood and God,"
said I before the priests of Jezebel."Cover over this whole
table with them [with wafers], and I will blow them away like
dust; hence they are not God, for God can not be handled or
eaten bodily."</p>

<p>They then asked whether I would hold to this. I
replied, "Yes, my lords, till the contrary is proved to me with
the Scriptures."</p>

<p>Thereupon I was led away from the council, -and another
brought forward, until ten had made this confession, one of
whom is not baptized yet, but he confessed that it is right and
good, and said that he once went to the teacher to be
baptized.</p>

<p>The lords then asked him, "How came it that he did not
baptize you?"</p>

<p>The person, a mere lad yet, and a dear child, replied, "My
lords, when the teacher presented the faith to me, and had
interrogated me, he well perceived that I was still young in
understanding, and bade me search the Scriptures still more;
but I desired that it be done. He then asked me whether I knew
that the world puts to death and burns such people. I replied:
'I know it well.' He then said to me: 'Hence I pray you, that
you have patience for this time, until I come again another
time. Search the Scriptures, and ask the Lord for wisdom; for
you are yet a youth. Thus we parted."'</p>

<p>The lords then asked, "Are you sorry that you are not
baptized?"</p>

<p>He said, "Yes, my lords."</p>

<p>They asked him further, "If you were not imprisoned, would
you be baptized?"</p>

<p>He replied, "Yes, my lords."</p>

<p>He was then led away from the council.</p>

<p>See, dear friends, these are beautiful signs and miracles;
open- your eyes, and behold when such young persons give
themselves for the truth, delivering their bodies into prison,
and even unto death. We have told the lords, that they should
bring forward all their learned men, and we would prove to them
with the truth, that they are all false prophets, and that they
have deceived the world for almost thirteen hundred years with
their deceitfulness, and that we would rather dispute with them
publicly upon a scaffold, in the midst of the marketplace, than
secretly; but this the priests will not do, and will spare no
pains to escape it. Thus all the learned men were called to
dispute in the consistory, all the lords of the council being
present, and also four of the most learned priests of Ghent; I
was present and heard it myself.</p>

<p>Therefore, search the Scriptures, which the Lord commands
you to do, and to act according to them, on pain of the
damnation of your souls, and of being cast into everlasting
fire, where there will be weeping and gnashing of teeth
forever; which Scriptures the priests forbid you to read, on
pain of being hated by all men all the days of your life, and
of having your body burned at the stake; which</p>

</div><div id="495"> 

<p>is soon done, as may be seen. Hence we rather do what the
Lord commands, though we are despised for a little while, and
by men cast out of this miserable world, and rest in the Lord,
than do what men command, and be forever the enemy of God, in
the horrible pit of hell. Therefore, search the Scriptures with
an upright heart towards God, and the Lord will give you
understanding. The Lord be with you. My love to you.</p>

<p>From me Jannijn Buefkijn, imprisoned at Ghent, for the
testimony of Jesus. I wish salvation to all that seek the Lord
with an unfeigned heart. Written in, the dark with poor
materials.</p>

<h2>AN ACCOUNT OF THE DEATH OF HANS VAN OVERDAM AND HANS KEESKOOPER</h2> 

<p>When these two lambs had been sentenced, the
procurator-general said, "That you are sentenced as heretics, is
for the reason that divers learned men disputed with you, and
you would not suffer yourselves to be instructed."</p>

<p><i>Hans van Overdam.</i> "My lords, if we could have disputed
publicly, it would soon have been seen what kind, learned men
they were."</p>

<p><i>Procurator-General.</i> "It is too late now; it is too
late now 1"</p>

<p>Both were sent away then, going with a smile on their
lips.</p>

<p><i>Hans van Overdam.</i> "Yes, yes, it is too late now I"</p>

<p>Hans Keeskooper had agreed with Hans van Overdam, that on
the scaffold he would take off his stockings, and in the
meantime Hans van Overdam should speak to the people; which was
also done. When the executioners would assist Hansken, the
latter desired to do it alone, that Hans van Overdam might
speak the longer to the people. This done, each was placed at
a stake, and they offered up their bodies to God.</p>

<h1>GOVERT, GILLIS, MARIKEN, AND ANNEKEN, A. D. 1550</h1>

<p>On the last of January, 1550, there were offered up for the
faith, at Lier, in Brabant, four pious Christians, named
Govert, Gillis, Mariken and Anneken, who, as sheep for the
slaughter, had been apprehended without violence. When they
were brought before the council, and questioned concerning
their faith, they made a frank and unfeigned confession of it.
The bailiff then said, "You stand here to defend yourselves?"</p>

<p>Govert replied, "As regards my faith, I have freely confessed
it, and shall turn to no other; though it cost my life, I will
adhere to it."</p>

<p>Forthwith the imperial edict was read to them, and the
bailiff asked them whether they understood its contents.</p>

<p>Govert said, "God has commanded , us through Christ, as is
recorded in the sixteenth chapter of Mark, that all who believe
and are baptized shall besaved, and that those who do not
believe shall be damned; but the emperor, in his blind
judgment, has commanded that whoever is baptized upon his
faith, shall be put to death without mercy. These two commands
militate against each other; one of the two we must forsake;
but everyone ought to know that we must keep the command of
God; for though Satan teaches that we are heretics, yet we do
not act contrary to the Word of God."</p>

<p>When they were led to the tribunal, Govert said to the
priests, "Take off your long robes, put on sack cloth, put ashes
on your heads, and repent, like those of Nineveh."</p>

<p>In the court the bailiff asked him whether he desired no
favor.</p>

<p>He replied, "I will not ask for your favor; for what I cannot
do without, the most high God will give me."</p>

<p>The bailiff said also to Anneken, "Do you not desire a favor,
before sentence is passed upon you?))</p>

<p>She answered, "I shall ask favor of God, my refuge."</p>

<p>Mariken, an old woman of seventy-five years, was asked
whether she would confess her sins to the priest.</p>

<p>She replied, "I am sorry that I ever confessed my sins to the
mortal ears of the priests."</p>

<p>Seeing some brethren, Govert turned his face and joyfully
comforted them, saying among other things, "I pray God, that you
may be thus imprisoned for His glory, as I now am."</p>

<p>The bailiff very fiercely said, "Be still, for your preaching
is of no account here.", "My lord bailiff," said he,"I speak only five or six words,
which God has given me to speak, does this give you so much
pain?" And when the people murmured on this account, he
said, "This has been witnessed from the time of righteous Abel,
that the righteous have suffered reproach; hence be not
astonished." The two servants that stood by him said, "You must
not speak; the bailiff will not have it; hence be still."</p>

<p>Immediately God closed his mouth, which grieved many. Gillis
was not questioned, and he said nothing at all; but they were
led back to prison, where they rejoiced together, and sang:
<i>Saligh is den man, en goet geheeten;</i> and also the
forty-first psalm. The bailiff then came into prison, and asked
Govert, whether he had considered the matter; to which be
replied, "Unless you repent, the punishment of God shall come
upon you." The bailiff looked out of the window, and said, "Will
God damn all this multitude of people?"</p>

<p>Govert replied, "I have spoken the Word of God to you; but I
hope there are still people here who fear God?"</p>

<p>The bailiff then turned to Anneken, and asked her what she
had to say to it.</p>

<p>She replied, "Lord bailiff, twice I have been greatly honored
in this city, namely, when I was married, and when my husband
became emperor;</p>

</div><div id="496"> 

<p>but I never had a joy that did not perish, as I now
have."</p>

<p>On his way to death, Govert delivered an excellent
admonition, reproving the wicked railing, and said, "Be it known
to you, that we do not die for theft, murder or heresy, but
because we seek an inheritance with God, and live according to
His Word."</p>

<p>The executioner commanded him silence, but he said, "Leave
God be with me for a little while; repent, for your life is
short."</p>

<p>A brother then said, "God will strengthen you.", "Oh, yes," said he,"the power of, His Spirit is not
weakening in me."</p>

<p>The monk attempted to speak to Mariken, but Govert said, "Get
you hence, deceiver, to your own people; for we have no need of
you."</p>

<p>Entering the ring, Govert said to the gild-brothers, "How you
stand here with sticks and staves? Thus stood the Jews when
they brought Christ to death; if we had been afraid of this, we
would have fled in time."</p>

<p>They then knelt down together, and prayed; whereupon they
kissed each other. Anneken immediately commenced to sing, "In
thee, O Lord; do I put my trust." Ps. 71:1. The servants told
her to be still; but Govert said, "No, sister, sing on," and
helped her sing. Enraged at this, the bailiff called to him a
servant, and whispered something in his ear. The latter went to
the assistant of the executioner, who, upon receiving the
order, immediately put a gag on Govert; but the latter held his
teeth so firmly closed, that the gag did not hinder him much,
and he laughingly said, "I could easily sing with the gag on;
but Paul says: 'Sing in your heart to God."' Eph. 5:19.</p>

<p>The executioner, in order to put her to shame, made Anneken
stand in her bare chemise. A servant asked Gillis whether he
did not see some of his people. Gillis said, "Do you know of
nothing else to torment us with?""What does he say?" asked
Govert."He inquires for our fellow brethren," replied Gillis.
Govert said, "Though I could count twenty, I would not mention a
single one. You think that by killing us you can suppress the
Word of God; but of those that hear and see this, hundreds
shall yet come forth." Standing at the stake, he said, "Amend
your ways and repent; for after this there will be no more time
for repentance." A servant who had a bottle of wine, asked them
whether they wished to drink. Govert said, "We have no desire
for your insipid wine; for our. Father shall give us new wine
in His eternal kingdom." Matt. 26:29. When it was thought that
the old woman had been strangled at the stake, she began to
sing a hymn in honor of her Bridegroom, which when Anneken
heard it, she, from ardent love, sang with her. When they all
stood at their stakes, each with a strap around the neck, they
smiled at and nodded to one another, thus affectionately
saluting and comforting each other,. andcommending their souls
into the hands of God, they fell asleep in the Lord, and were
burned.</p>

<h2>WILLEM, MARTIGEN, DIEUWERTGEN, AND MARITGEN JANS, A. D. 1550</h2> 

<p>In the year 1550, there were apprehended at Leyden, in
Holland, four lambs of Christ, namely, a brother and three
sisters, named Willem, Maritgen, Dieuwertgen and Maritgen Jans,
who, having frankly confessed their faith, and no pain or
suffering have power to cause them to apostatize, were finally
sentenced to death as heretics.</p>

<p>When they were brought forth, Willem said, "We suffer not as thieves or murderers, but for the name
of,the Lord; therefore, O Lord, forgive them that do this to
us."</p>

<p>Maritgen said, "Lord, strengthen us, who suffer for Thy Word,
which few are willing to do. I am not worthy to suffer for Thy
name; but, Lord, Thou shalt make me worthy." Acts 5:41.</p>

<p>Dieuwertgen came forward singing, and then said, "Dear
citizens, do not avenge this; for it is done for the name, of
the Lord, " She further said, "Lord, look upon' us, who suffer for Thy word; for our trust
is in Thee alone."</p>

<p>Maritgen Jans said, "This is the narrow way to salvation. O
Lord, receive my spirit. And you lords of the council, only
consider what great injury you are doing to your souls, in
shedding innocent blood; hence repent, like those of Nineveh;
for we suffer, not on, account of heresy or sedition; we seek
not to contend, save with the sword of the Spirit, which is.
the Word of God." Thereupon, commending thir souls into the
hands of God, they offered up. their sacrifice, presenting an
acceptable savor to God, for, which they will hereafter not
lose their reward.</p>

<h2>TEUNIS VAN HAUSTELRAED, A. D. 1550</h2> 

<p>As this Teunis van Haustelraed was a zealous man in the fear
of God, and very diligent with the talent which the Lord had
committed to him, to get gain _for the Lord, to bring many to
the knowledge of the truth, and to strengthen those who had
received the truth, in the same;. and as he thus most
faithfully oversaw and served the church of Christ, he was
finally apprehended, and ,imprisoned at Limmick, a city in:the
province of Jueelick, -where he had many, a. severe contest
with many subtle and shrewd spirits, and had to suffer and
endure many torments for his faith. The controversy was
principally about infant baptism and the sacrament, in which
he.did not agree with the papists. And as he could not be
overcome or moved by them, but adhered firmly to the truth, he
was finally condemned to, be burred. They led him out of the
city into the open field, and there burned him to ashes, about
the year 1550.</p>

<p>While he was yet in prison,.he remembered his brethren and
sisters with a consolatory admonition,</p>

</div><div id="497"> 

<p>which he sent to them from prison; it reads as follows, "O God, grant that in my great suffering I may unceasingly
press to Thee, and not fear any pain, or death. Yea, dear Lord,
I beseech Thee, who art God over all things, that I may not be
ensnared by whatever may and will yet come upon me, which I
shall suffer with Christ, unto salvation; for I know that the
crown of life is prepared for those who persevere herein.
Therefore, O ye pious, despair not, but earnestly betake
yourselves to your Captain Christ, for He can win the field;
and He shall come at the last day, in flaming fire, and hold a
severe judgment over all the ungodly. He shall then say to the
sheep on His right hand: 'Come, inherit the kingdom of my
Father, prepared for you from the foundation of the world.'
Matt. 25:34. O all ye Christians, cast from you all that
burdens you, and stand with your loins girt, and watch for the
Lord. Heb. 12:1; Luke 12:35., "If you are righteous, become still more righteous; for,
believe me, you will need it all. O all ye members of Christ
together, I beseech you, wake up now, that you may not sleep
when the Bridegroom comes; for then the wise will be admitted
to salvation, but the foolish will be shut out into eternal
damnation. Matt. 25:10., "The Lord, to whom belonged the talent entrusted to you,
will come again, and strictly inquire what each has gained. He
shall then commend the wise, saying: 'Enter thou into the joy
of thy Lord.' But the slothful shall be reproved for his
wickedness, and committed to torment. Matt. 25:26. O ye lambs
of the Lord, feed now, that you may become ready, so that you
may not be unprepared when you are to come to the wedding.
Otherwise the king will say: 'Friend, how camest thou in hither
not having a wedding garment?' Then the man, having no good
answer, shall be speechless. But the king will command him to
be cast into everlasting darkness. Matt. 22:13., "Do not become buyers of lands, but rather sell, you that
are bidden, and give to the poor. Luke 14:18; Matt. 19:21. O
dear brethren, have compassion on the poor, and comfort and
assist them. I have nearly fought the fight, and my course will
soon be finished; God grant that I may keep the faith, and the
crown of life will be prepared for me. II Tim. 4:8. O Lord,
raise up faithful servants, and make them rulers over thy
household, that they may give them meat in due season. Matt.
24: 45. Pious Christians, I give you this as a brotherly adieu,
for your good. It has been written with a faithful heart, and I
hope to seal it with my blood."</p>

<h2>TIJS VAN LINDT, A. D. 1550</h2> 

<p>Tijs van Lindt was a zealous and devout man, a resident of
Remunde, in Guelderland, and walked, according to the knowledge
which God had given him, devoutly in the fear of the Lord; he
was especially gifted with a sympathizing and mercifulheart
towards the poor and needy, so that, through the manifold alms
and assistance which he rendered to the poor in general, he had
a good report with many; for, with that which God had given
him, he comforted many in their distress. But as he had
forsaken popery, with its idolatry, accepted the evangelical
truth, received the saving faith in Jesus Christ, repented of
his sinful life (abused in ignorance), been baptized upon his
faith, and daily sought to go on in the new and holy life, to
the honor of God, the edification of his neighbor, and the
enlightenment of those who still sat in blindness, in order
thus to present his body a living sacrifice, holy, acceptable
unto God, the adversaries of the truth could not bear it, and
this pious man was reported and charged with heresy. He was put
into prison, where he had to endure many conflicts and
assaults; they assailed him severely with torments, that he
should apostatize from his faith. But as he notwithstanding all
sufferings and torments steadfastly adhered to his faith, he
was finally condemned by virtue of the imperial mandate, and
burned to ashes.</p>

<p>Shortly after the burning of this pious witness of Jesus
Christ, in Remunde, the city itself took fire, and was almost
entirely reduced to ashes. How it was is not known, unless of
its own accord. Many think that it was a punishment for the
innocent blood, which judgment we leave to God.</p>

<h2>PALMKEN PALMEN, A. D. 1550</h2> 

<p>Palmken Palmen was a resident of Borren, near the bailiwick
of Millen, and was very zealous to live in the truth of the
holy Gospel, and to follow Christ his Lord in obedience, whom
he had put on when he was baptized upon his faith. But as the
light is hated by darkness, and there was at this time a severe
persecution in the country, by certain bloodthirsty
authorities, instigated by the priests there, this good man was
often in great distress, and was finally imprisoned, in which
imprisonment he suffered much reproach and many assaults; and
as he immovably kept his faith in every fear and distress, he
was finally sentenced to be burned to ashes, which sentence, as
appeared, he received with gladness; for, when he was taken
away from the house at Borren, he joyfully kept singing a hymn
until the last moment, that is, as long as he had breath, while
he was standing at the stake at which he was burned to ashes;
which took place between Sittert and Limmerich, in the open
field, where a gravestone still marks the place where he is
said to have died.</p>

<h2>ELEVEN, AND THEN SEVEN, PUT TO DEATH IN<br />
THE BAILIWICK OF MILLEN AND BORREN,<br />
A. D. 1550</h2> 

<p>A short time previously there were seven brethren at one
time, and eleven at another, executed with the sword, in the
bailiwick of Millen and.Bor-</p>

</div><div id="498"> 

<p>ren, and thus bore- testimony with their blood to the name
of Christ.</p>

<h2>REMKEN RAMAECKERS, A. D. 1550</h2> 

<p>There was also a ,pious and devout brother and fellow member
of the church of Jesus Christ, named Remken Ramaeckers, burned
for the evangelical truth, near Sittert.</p>

<h2>GERRIT VAN KEMPEN, A. P. 1550</h2> 

<p>In like manner, Gerrit van Kempen was burners for the
testimony of Jesus Christ, at Wislen.</p>

<h2>THREE BRETHREN AT ANTWERP, OF WHOM THE<br />
OLDEST WHO WAS SPOKESMAN WAS NAMED<br />
JAN, A. D. 1550</h2> 

<p>The malice of the priests was so great that they could not
bear it, that those who sought in quietness to serve God the
Lord in simplicity and sincerity should reside in Antwerp; but
they so instigated the Margrave, that rather than lose his
office, he went about to apprehend them, and having to this end
sent out his servants, he arrested three of them, which caused
the priests great joy. The captive brethren, on the other hand,
also rejoiced that they were worthy to suffer for the name of
the Lord. They were sharply examined concerning their faith, of
which they made a good confession, with regard to baptism, and
the sacrament, as well as to other articles; and though greatly
assailed with subtlety by the priests, and the doctors of
Louvain, they so.sagaciously defended themselves with the
Scriptures, that the margrave himself declared that he had
never heard so clear an exposition of the Scriptures, and that
if he were with them only two weeks they should persuade him.
Thereupon the brethren said, "Judge yourselves, whether it is
not the true faith and the truth for which we pledge our lives,
and from which we will not depart, but persevere therein to the
praise and the glory of the Lord, who did not forsake us, even
when we were sitting in darkness." Heb. 10:28; Matt. 24:13;
Heb. 13:5; Matt. 4:16.</p>

<p>Now when the doctors produced many Scriptures in a perverted
and wrong manner, the brethren said, "How dare you be so
presumptuous as to teach the way of the Lord so pervertedly?"
One of the.doctors replied, "It is because we are not willing to
be imprisoned and in fear and tribulation with you; but in
about seven or eight years I will promulgate the truth aright,
and make great gain by it."Poor man I" said one of the
brethren,"you trust in a vain hope, since you are sure of
neither evening nor morning, hour nor time, which came true;
for he died shortly after." Luke 12:20."Behold," said they,"you
acknowledge yourselves, that we have committed no crime; why
then will you take our lives?" The council said, "The decree of
the emperor commands us to put you to death.""Take then," said
they,"the decree withyou into the judgment of the Lord, and see
what it will avail you; indeed nothing."</p>

<p>They were then sentenced, each to be burned at a stake. This
sentence did not terrify them; but they greatly rejoiced, and
comforted each other. The council said to the youngest, "Pray
the margrave, and:ie will very probably release you.""Oh, no,"
replied he."I will suffer with my brethren for the truth." Thus
they went together gladly and boldly to the stakes, saying to
one another, "We go in peace to the peaceable house of God, there to
obtain an everlasting habitation." They also prayed for the
lords, that God would not lay this deed to their charge, but
enlighten them, that they might come to repentance. Finally,
standing at the stake, they cried out, "Heavenly Father, receive
our spirits into Thy hands," and thus they offered up their
sacrifice as true children of God.</p>

<h2>ANTHONY VAN ASSELROYE, A. D. 1550</h2> 

<p>The Lord Jesus said to Peter, who was not only a lamb of
Jesus Christ, but also a faithful shepherd, elder and overseer
of the flock, "Verily, Verily, I say unto thee, When thou wast
young, thou girdedst thyself and walkedst whither thou
wouldest</p>

<p>but when thou shalt be old, thou shalt stretch forth thy
hands, and another shall gird thee, and carry thee whither thou
wouldest not.""This spake he," says John,"signifying by what
death he should glorify God." John 21:18, 19. Here no great
bishopric, benefice, or yearly stipend is promised to the high
apostle Peter, by his Master Christ Jesus, for this his
faithful service, which he should begin and carry out in
watching and feeding the sheep and lambs of the Lord; but much
rather tribulation, bonds, and the bitter death with which he
should meet. John 16:33; 15:20.</p>

<p>But even as his Master entered through tribulation and
suffering into His glory, so it was His will, that His servants
should follow His footsteps. This was exemplified, about the
year 1550, in the case of one Anthony van Asselroye, a faithful
follower of Christ and His chosen apostle Peter. He also bowed
his neck under the easy yoke of our Lord Jesus, following Him
from the whole heart in the regeneration, so that he was chosen
by the church of God, to feed and pasture, like Peter, the
souls of the sheep of the Lord with the Word of God; which he
faithfully did in that dark, perilous and bloody time, until he
fell into the hands of the bloodthirsty papists, who bound him,
and carried him whither he would not; for no chastening for the
present seemeth to be joyous to the flesh, but grievous. Heb.
12:11.</p>

<p>Thus this teacher and elder was compelled to tread the
bloody wine press, and suffered and endured many torments from
these persecutors. And as he patiently passed through all this,
and no <i>tyranny could</i> move him to apostatize, he was
condemned and put to death, and thus torn and devoured by these
<i>ravening wolves,</i> according to the</p>

</div><div id="499"> 

<p>flesh, but in no wise according to the Spirit. But even as
this hero and soldier of Jesus Christ obediently followed
Christ and His faithful followers, in the faith and the
regeneration, so he, at the appearing of the Lord, shall sit
with them upon twelve thrones, judging the twelve tribes of
Israel. Matt. 19:28. There he shall receive again, in glorious
immortality, like unto the glorious body of our Lord Jesus
Christ, the members which he delivered into bitter death, for
the truth and the name of the Lord, and shall live with Him
forever. Phil. 3:21; I Thess. 4:17.</p>

<p>Peter Bruynen, who was offered up at Antwerp, A. D. 1551,
confesses that he received Christian baptism upon his faith, by
said Anthony van Asselroye.</p>

<h2>JOHN KNEL OR BUCHNER, AND ANNA CANTIANA,<br />
A. D. 15.50</h2> 

<p>In the year 1550, there were imprisoned in the city of
London, in England, two pious witnesses of Jesus, a man by the
name of John Knel or Buchner, and a woman named Anna Cantiana;
who, among other things, believed and confessed with Menno
Simons and all true believers, that the Son of God became man
for our sakes, and that He did not receive His humanity from
Mary or any other source, but that the eternal Word or Son,
became Himself flesh or man. As the afore-mentioned could by no
means be brought to apostatize, but would firmly adhere to the
truth accepted, they, after suffering many torments, were
condemned to death at said place. John Knel was burned the
second of May, A. D. 1550. Anna Cantiana was also burned to
ashes the same year. According to the testimony of John Fox she
was ever ready to render service to others especially to those
who were in bonds and imprisonment, with whom she constantly
was, to minister to them. And as these above-mentioned martyrs
suffered all this for the testimony of Jesus, and not on
account of any crime, and steadfastly died for the truth, and
were not ashamed of Christ and His 'word; in this life, before
men, He shall also not be ashamed of themm, before His Father,
but, out of grace, bestow upon them and all the blessed, the
kingdom prepared for them from the beginning.</p>

<p>Concerning this, see preface to the old <i>Oferboeck</i> of
the year 1616, letter J,'other side.</p>

<h2>JACQUES DOSIE AT LEEUWAERDEN</h2> 

<p>At a certain time, which we have not been able precisely to
ascertain, a lad named Jacques Dosie, was imprisoned at
Leeuwaerden, in Friesland, for the truth of the holy Gospel. It
is said that he was only about fifteen years of age; but the
wonderworking God, by the holy Spirit, manifested His power
through this little one, and perfected His praise out of the
mouth of this young child. Matt. 21:16; Ps. 8:2. For; on a
certain occasion, when the lord and lady of Friesland, with
many noblesand ladies, were assembled at Leeuwaerden, they
summoned Jacques before them, conversed with him, and examined
him, whether he was contaminated with any heresy. But the
faithful God, according to His promise (Luke 21:14; Matt.
10:19; Mark 13:11; Luke 12:11) , gave him a mouth and wisdom,
which they could in no wise resist or quench.</p>

<p>Thus it came, that after a few words the lord of Friesland
went his way, because the people were waiting for him; but the
lady of Friesland, moved to compassion; it seems, talked with
him, asking him why ,he,' who was still so young, was thus
severely imprisoned and bound.</p>

<p>Jacques answered, "This was- done only because I believe in
Christ, adhere to Him alone, and will in no wise forsake
Him."</p>

<p>The lady asked him, "Do you not belong to the people who
rebaptize themselves, perpetrate so much evil in our country,
make rebellion, run together; and say that they are dispersed
on account of the faith, and boast of being the church of God,
although they are a wicked set, and cause great commotion among
the people?"</p>

<p><i>Jacques.</i> "My lady, I do not know any rebellious
people, nor am I one of their number; but we would much rather,
according to the teachings of the Scriptures, assist also our
enemies, satisfy them, if they hunger and thirst, with food and
drink, and resist them in no wise with revenge or violence."
Rom. 12:20, 17; Matt. 5:39.</p>

<p>Another said, "It would be seen, if you only had the
power.</p>

<p>Jacques replied, "Oh, .no my lady, believe; if it were
permitted among us, to resist the evil with the carnal sword,
know, that no seven men should have brought me here, and I
should have kept out of your hands, for there would have been
power to do it."</p>

<p><i>Lady.</i> "I know there are such sects, who are very
wicked and kill the people, and also have their goods and wives
in .common."</p>

<p><i>Jacques.</i> "Oh, no, my lady, we are quite unjustly
charged with these wicked things, and occasion is thereby
sought, to persecute us; but we must suffer and endure all this
with patience." Matt. 5:11; Acts 21:38; 11 Tim. 2:3.</p>

<p><i>Lady.</i> "Was it not your people, who with great dishonor
took up arms against the government at Amsterdam and
Muenster?"</p>

<p><i>Jacques."Oh,</i> no, my lady; for those people erred
greatly; but we regard it as a doctrine of the devil, to seek
to resist the authorities with the external sword and violence,
and would much rather suffer persecution and death from them,
together with everything that is inflicted upon us." Rom.
13:1_; I Pet. 2:13; Tit. 3:1.</p>

<p><i>Lady.</i> "Nevertheless, it is imputed to you, and they
who make uproar do very wrong; however, I believe what you say
concerning it."</p>

<p><i>Jacques.</i> "My lady, do we not read much of this
character, how wicked men spoke evil of the apos-</p>

</div><div id="500"> 

<p>tles themselves, and the whole band of Christians, and, by
many wicked things, sought to incite the authorities to
vengeance against them, -though it was all falsehood?" Acts
28:22; 24:5; Luke 2:34.</p>

<p><i>Lady.</i> "Do you not believe that all are damned who are
not baptized according to your way?"</p>

<p><i>Jacques.</i> "Oh, no, my lady, for judgment with regard to
this belongs to God alone, who shall reward everyone according
to his works, as is clearly evident in many places of the holy
Scriptures. Moreover, the water has not power to cleanse us
from sin, as Peter says, but is merely a sign of all
obedience." I Peter 3:21; Matt. 3:15.</p>

<p><i>Lady.</i> "When you are baptized, tell me, can you still
sin?"</p>

<p><i>Jacques.</i> "Yes, my lady, for this appears very clearly
from the words of Paul; since we are still clothed in a weak
and sinful body, and sin in many things. Rom. 7:14, 18; Gal.
5:17; Jas. 3:2: But we must constantly crucify and mortify it,
and not practice or fulfill the works of the flesh; or the
righteousness of God will condemn us to eternal death."</p>

<p><i>Lady.</i> "Wherein do you still differ with the
inquisitor, let me hear once?"</p>

<p><i>Jacques."My</i> lady, because I will in no wise accept
his doctrine, unless he first clearly prove to me that it
accords in every respect with the Word of God; otherwise he
labors in vain; for my faith is founded on the pure Word of God
alone. As regards the practice of infant baptism, we contradict
it with reason, since it is not a command of God Almighty, but
much rather the invention of men, seeing infants have not the
least knowledge or discernment of what is required or comprised
in baptism. But Christ in His love for such innocent ones has
promised them the kingdom of God through grace, without
requiring any of these conditions. Matthew 19:14; Mark 10:14;
Matt. 18:3. My lady, I find that popery is infected with many
other errors besides this; for they seek to make Christ come
into the bread, or that the bread should become changed into
His flesh and blood; which we in no wise believe, but .regard
as an exceedingly gross error and absurdity. But we believe
that Christ truly ascended to heaven, and sits on the right
hand of His Father. Mark 16:19; Luke 24: 51; Acts 1:9. Thus we
do not believe that there is any salvation in their flour,
mass, purgatory, or any of their services for the dead, and all
like human inventions, of which they have a great number, and
all of which are nowhere recognized in the holy Scriptures, but
excluded therefrom: Gal. 1:14; I Tim. 4:2. But, on the
contrary, we call upon God and seek our salvation in Him, and
not in any creature, that we may not corrupt God's own glory,
and give it to any of His creatures. Jer. 13:16; Josh.
7:19.</p>

<p>The provincial having come, he began to speak, and
said, "Will you not believe in the sacrament, which Christ
Himself instituted?"</p>

<p><i>Jacques."My</i> lord, Paul says that the bread is broken
in remembrance of Him, and that the cup of blessing is the
communion of the blood of Christ." I Cor. 11:24; 10:16. Thus he
ended his words.</p>

<p><i>Lady.</i> "I consider this the worst thing in you, that
you will not have the children baptized; for all Germany and
every kingdom regards your doings as heresy."</p>

<p><i>Jacques.</i> "My lady, it is indeed true that we are
everywhere despised, .and, like the apostolical band, evil
spoken of in all the world; but do not think that such shall
therefore perish at the last day." I Cor. 4:9; Matt. 5:11; II
Pet. 2:2.</p>

<p><i>Lady.</i> "My dear child, behold, I pray thee, come over
to our side, and repent, and you shall get out of this trouble,
and I promise to procure your release."</p>

<p><i>Jacques.</i> "My lady, I thank you very much for your
affection and favor towards me; but I will not change my faith,
to please mortal man; unless it be proved to me with the
Scriptures, that I err; for I have given myself entirely to
God, to be His friend, and herein I hope to live and die."
Galatians 1:10; Phil. 3:8; John 15:14.</p>

<p><i>Laxly."My</i> son, behold this multitude of men; I have
compassion for you, and entreat you, repent of your baptism and
do not remain so obstinate; if you, so young a child, should
die for this cause, it would, be a heavy cross for my heart;
hence see that you are released, and may go home."</p>

<p><i>Jacques."My</i> lady, I can not see that there is any
crime at all in my baptism, seeing I herein have not followed
my own, but the holy institution of our Lord Jesus Christ; had
I been able to find another, better way to the kingdom of God,
it would not have happened; for I was inclined with my whole
heart to seek the Lord my God." Isaiah 56:6.</p>

<p><i>Lady.</i> "Should they then all err, so many learned men
that have been before you; do you dare be so presumptuous as
this?"</p>

<p><i>Jacques.</i> "My lady, in Israel four hundred prophets
were against the single Micaiah, who alone spoke the truth, and
was kept imprisoned on bread and water; which King Ahab
experienced in his distress, but too late." I Kings 22:27; II
Chronicles 18:5.</p>

<p>The lady finally said, "I find many good things in you; but
your greatest error I consider to lie in your baptism, which
does not seem to me to be of God."</p>

<p>In this manner she had him brought before her many times;
but as he, young in years, but old in the knowledge of Jesus
Christ (Wisd. 4:8; I Cor. 14:20), had built his foundation upon
the rock Jesus Christ, he valiantly repelled all the subtle
devices of Satan-whether consisting in many severe threats, or
in fair promises of the kingdom of this world (Matt. 4:8)-with
the sword of the Spirit, which is the Word of God; and as
nothing could move him to forsake Christ, he was con-</p>

</div><div id="501"> 

<p>demned to death by the rulers of the darkness of this world
(Eph. 6:12), and thus testified-and confirmed the true faith of
the truth with his death and blood, and, through grace,
obtained the crown of everlasting glory.</p>

<p>Concerning this, see -a hymn in the <i>Gulden Harp,</i>
beginning: Tot <i>Leeuwaeyden op eenen dagh.</i></p>

<h2>HANS VAN MONSTER, AND BARTEL, AND OLD JACOB, PUT TO DEATH IN THE CASTLE OF BERCHEM, NEAR ANTWERP</h2> 

<p>As it has from the beginning been abundantly heard and seen,
that the truth is envied and trampled upon by its enemies and
haters, and that its pious confessors have had to suffer from
them in manifold ways; so, among many other examples, it was
verified, at a certain time after Mary van Beckum and her
sister had been offered up at Delden, in the case of a faithful
brother named Hans van Monster, who lay imprisoned for the
truth, in the castle of Berchem, near Antwerp. And since Jesus
very earnestly teaches and recommends to us the visiting of the
sick and imprisoned, in their tribulation (Matt. 25:36; Heb.
13:3), a single man named Old Jacob, and another by the name of
Bartel, moved by the spirit and brotherly love, went from
Antwerp to Berchem, to comfort their brother, according to
their ability; in his tribulation. When they arrived there; the
enemies watched them, supposing that old Jacob was a teacher
and elder; for at that time the bloodthirsty papists had put a
reward of three hundred guilders upon teachers, to be given to
any who should deliver them into the hands of the executioners;
and as old Jacob was very eloquent, and could defend himself
very ably with the Word of God, they hoped to earn said money
by him, in which, however, they; failed, as Jacob was no
teacher. Nevertheless, they kept them, and imprisoned them with
their fellow brother; and as they together were built upon the
immovable rock Christ Jesus, they remained steadfast in all
these tempests; and since no torment could induce them to
depart from the truth, they were together put to death in the
castle of Berchem, valiantly offering their lives for the
truth, and are now waiting with all the saints of God, the
blessed resurrection unto eternal life. Rev. 6:11; I Thess.
4:16.</p>

<p>In the beginning of the conversion of the beforementioned
Bartel, and another, named Gerrit, it occurred that these two
young men were present when Mary van Beckum and her sister were
offered up in the castle of Delden; and they testified that
they heard Mary van Beckum declare publicly before the people,
when she was placed at the stake, to be burned, "You shall see
this stake at which I am to be burned grow green, by which you
may know that it is the truth for which we here suffer and
die." These two young men, who heard this themselves, some time
afterwards went of their own accord to the stake, and saw it
flourish. Terrified thereby, they went together to Antwerp,
toinquire for such people; and having come to an elder by the
name of Hendrick van Aernem, and Jan Lubberts of B., they
related the above to them. Thereupon Hendrick van Aernem
replied, "I would not dare repeat this after you." They said, "Should we not tell what we have heard and seen ourselves?"
Thus they adhered to their assertion concerning what had
occurred with regard to Mary van Beckum, and, accordingly, lent
their ears to the truth, repented, became converted, and united
with the church of God. Afterwards Gerrit went to Amsterdam,
where he resided until his death; but Bartel lost his life for
the truth, as has been heard.</p>

<h2>TWO YOUNG GIRLS, ABOUT A. D 1550</h2> 

<p>About the year 1550, it happened in the bishopric of
Bamberg, that two young girls espoused and received Christ by
faith, were baptized upon their faith, according to the
doctrine of Christ, and arising from sin, sought to walk in
newness of life with Christ. On this account the antichristians
sought to hinder them in this good resolution, and to quench
their good intention as much as lay in their power: They
therefore cast these two young lambs into prison, where they
tortured them with great severity, and sought also with other
unchristian means to cause them to apostatize; but as they were
firmly built upon Christ, thev remained faithful and steadfast
during the entire trial. Col. 2:7; Rev. 2:10. Hence, the
authorities, who herein generally follow the advice of the
false 'prophets, condemned them to death; at which they were
joyful and undaunted. When they were led out to execution,
their persecutors, by way of reproach and mockery, placed
wreaths of straw upon their heads; whereupon one said to the
other, "Since the Lord Christ wore a crown of thorns for us, why
should not we wear these crowns of straw in honor of Him? The
faithful God shall for this place a beautiful golden crown and
glorious wreath upon our heads." Thus these two young branches
armed themselves with patience, according to the example of
their Captain Jesus, remained faithful unto death, died
steadfastly, and. obtained, through grace, the glorious crown
with God in heaven.</p>

<p>To these girls their adversaries accord the praise, that
they died quite undauntedly and steadfastly, and that they had
the true foundation and ground of the Christian faith in their
Redeemer Christ Jesus, whom they openly confessed, and called
upon in their distress, wherein they steadfastly died with a
firm hope; so that doubts were entertained among their
adversaries, as to whether they themselves were not in greater
error before God, than these young girls, though they were
Anabaptists.</p>

<p>He that wishes may read, with regard to this account,
Johannes Manlius, printed at Frankfort, A. D. 1550.</p>

</div><div id="502"> 
 

<h2>A LAD OF FIFTEEN YEARS, A. D. 1550</h2> 
   

<p>At the same time a lad of fifteen years was put to death,
suffering it with great steadfastness, at I_eeuwaerden; whose
faith is compared to that of the aforementioned two young girls
put to death at Bamberg. See <i>Ondeygang, page 1130, col.
1.</i></p>

<h2>OF A DECREE FOR THE INTRODUCTION OF THE</h2> 

<h2>INQUISITION, A. D. 1550</h2> 

<p>It appears that at this time the bitterness of the Romish
clergy increased and broke forth more and more, against those
who sought to .follow the evangelical doctrine of .Jesus
Christ; so that they prevailed upon the Emperor, through
decrees, to revive the inquisition aver the consciences of the
inhabitants of the Netherlands, which for a time had seemingly
abated, and to introduce it with greater rigor than before;
which was accordingly done in the manner prescribed, which
caused great dissatisfaction and sorrow to the common people of
said countries. In regard to this, a certain author writes
thus:, "Though many severe decrees had been published before at
different times, for the oppression of the evangelical
believers, whereby many thousands were miserably put to death
for the faith, in the Netherlands; yet the hatred and ill will
of the people increased to an unwonted degree, in the year
1550, in consequence of the decree in regard to the
inquisition, issued by Emperor Charles V, at Brussels, on the
29th of April; for thereby it was declared, that it was the
intention, from that time forth publicly to introduce the
spiritual inquisition, but to have the cruel and bloody
mandates nevertheless rigorously executed by the secular
power." <i>Chron. van den Ondergang, page</i> 11.29, col. 1,
compared with <i>Eman. de Met., lib. 1. Pieter Bor., lib. 1.
Oorspronch der Nederlantsche Beroerten,</i> old edition, fol.
5, 6.</p>

<p><i>Further Observation.-Though the</i> writer says its the
sequel, that some magistrates would not publish this decree
concerning the inquisition, and that some, by humble petitions
to the Emperor, obtained a mitigation; yet it had come so far,
that actual means were secretly employed to carry out this
purpose, through the inquisitors; in consequence of which, the
minds of the people became the more agitated and disaffected;
so that many emigrated</p>

</div><div id="503"> 

<p>from the cities of Brabant, particularly from West Flanders.
<i>See the authors cited.</i></p>

<h2>REYER DIRCKS, A BOATMAN, BURNT AFTER DREADFUL TORTURE, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS<br />
CHRIST, AT AMSTERDAM, IN HOLLAND,<br />
IN THE YEAR 1550</h2> 

<p>At this time, also Reyer Dircks, a pious hero and valiant
soldier, of Jesus Christ, though of small repute in the eyes of
the world, who gained his livelihood with a little boat on the
river Amstel, enlisted under the bloody banner of his Saviour,
.and united with the cross-bearing church, contemptuously
called Anabaptists. Having been with them about three years, he
virtually experienced that the kingdom of heaven suffers
violence, and that the violent take it by force; inasmuch as he
could not enter the spacious halls of the blessed palace of God
without pressing through the strait gate, so that his flesh,
yea the whole body, remained on the posts, and this in the
fire, as food for the birds and wild beasts.</p>

<p>He was imprisoned at Amsterdam, in Holland, and, though he
was most miserably tortured, he nevertheless refused to depart
from his faith, and the promise which he had made to God in
baptism. He was then condemned to death as a heretic, and very
cruelly executed with flaming fire.</p>

<p>The foregoing may be clearly seen from the following
sentence, which was read on the day of his death, in the court
at Amsterdam, by the ecclesiastical rulers.</p>

<p class="c8"><i>Sentence of Death of Ryer Dircks</i></p>

<p>Whereas Ryer Dircks, boatman, citizen of this city,. did,
about three years ago, embrace the doctrines, errors, sects,
and heresies of the Anabaptists, and is holding pernicious
views with regard to the sacraments of the holy church,
contrary to the holy Christian faith, the ordinances of the
holy church, and the written laws and decrees of his Imperial
Majesty, our gracious lord, and, moreover, persists in his
errors and heresies, notwithstanding the instruction given him
in the true faith; therefore, my lords of the court, having
heard the demand made by <i>my</i> lord the bailiff, in the
name of his Imperial Majesty, concerning the afore-mentioned
Ryer Dircks, as also his confession, and having duly considered
the circumstances of the case, condemn said Ryer Dircks,
pursuant to the aforesaid decrees, to be executed with fire by
the executioner; and, furthermore, declare his property
confiscated for the benefit of his Imperial Majesty, as Count
of Holland, without derogation and'prejudice to the privileges
of this city.</p>

<p>Thus pronounced, and committed to the executioner for
execution, this sixteenth day of August, A. D. 1550, in the
presence of the bailiff, all the burgomasters, and all the
judges, with the exception of Jan Dunen.</p>

<p>Ryer Dircks was examined by torture the ninth of July, A. D.
1550.</p>

<p>Extracted from the book of criminal sentences, in the
keeping of the secretary of the city of Amsterdam.</p>

<p class="c8">N. N.</p>

<h2>A SMITH AT KOMEN, A. D. 1551</h2> 

<p>In or about the year 1551, a smith was apprehended for the
divine truth, .at Komen, in Flanders. He freely confessed his
faith, and as he would not depart from it, he was sentenced to
death in two ways, namely, if he recanted, he was to be
executed with the sword; otherwise to be burned alive. To this
end, twofold preparations were made; but seeing the multitude,
and fearing trouble, the authorities kept the brother in
prison. Hence, some climbed to the top of the prison and broke
through the roof, to see what was being done with the doomed
man. At last, one knocked at the door of the prison, desiring
to know whether the brother was alive or dead. Having been
admitted, he immediately returned with blood on his hand, which
he showed to the people, saying, "He is dead! He is dead!" The
dead man was then brought out on a ladder, with his head lying
between his legs, and the ladder placed upon the wall of the
churchyard, where the priest made a long speech (a sermon
probably), saying among other things, that he had renounced his
heretical belief, and reaccepted the Roman church and her
saving faith; and"holding now a good resolution," said he,"he
was instantly executed, lest he might fall back into his old
error." But it was firmly believed that the priest slandered
the dead man, and this the more so; since after relating the
sentence, he said that he obstinately adhered to his previous
confession. Thus God constrains the wicked, in the telling of
their lies; themselves, unawares, to reveal the truth of the
matter.</p>

<h2>GILLIS AND ELIZABETH, A. D. 1551</h2> 

<p>On the 21st of July, A. D. 1551, two pious Christians, a
brother by the name of Gillis, and a sister named Elizabeth,
were sentenced to death as heretics, pursuant to the imperial
decree, at Ghent, in Flanders. They were not led forth to death
at the usual time, but at 1 o'clock in the afternoon. Having
ascended the scaffold, they prayed to God. In the meantime, the
executioner unlaced the gown of Elizabeth, which, when she
arose, fell down, so that she stood there in her shift and
linen trousers, which the executioner, by way of mockery, had
made her put <i>on.</i> Feeling greatly ashamed on this
account, she immediately went to the stake, and then said, "I
thank Thee, O Lord, that I am worthy to suffer for Thy name. I
now stand at the touchstone, at which God's elect .are tried. O
Lord, strengthen me, and delay not."</p>

<p>Gillis said, "Dear sister, be patient in your suffering, and
comfort yourself in God; He will not forsake you."</p>

<p>"O dear brother," said she,"I will never depart from
Him."</p> 
</div><div id="504"> 
<p>Gillis then cried, "O Lord, forgive them their sins, who
inflict death upon me; for as they do not know Thee, they know
not what they do."</p>

<p>Finally they cried out, "O heavenly Father, into Thy hands we
commend our spirits." And thus, through fire, they died a
blessed death well pleasing unto God.</p>

<h2>JORIS, WOUTER, GRIETGEN AND NAENTGEN, IN<br />
THE YEAR 1551</h2> 

<p>On account of the severe and great persecution which was
carried on everywhere in the Nether lands, against the true
Christians, .four pious believers, among others, named Joris, ,
Wouter; Grietgen and Naentgen, fled, in the year 1551,. from
Lier in Brabant, to Ghent in Flanders. They had not resided
long in the latter place when they were betrayed by a Judas,
and brought prisoners from their houses to the castle of the
count, where. they joyfully thanked God, and sang praises to
Him, because they were .:ounted worthy to suffer for His name.
When assailed by the monks and oth.er sophists, they freely
confessed their faith, from which no subtlety could turn them;
but they valiantly withstood, with the truth, the seducers who
sought to murder their souls, and were then condemned to death
by virtue of the imperial mandate, because they had apostatized
from the Roman church, condemned infant baptism, and had been
baptized upon faith. They were sentenced to be burned at the
stake without being strangled. They thanked the lords, and
Grietgen said, "My lords, save three stakes; we can all four die
at one; for we, are spiritually of one mind." Rom. 12:16. They
were joyful in the Lord, and thanked. God greatly. Naentgen
said, "This is the day for which I have longed so much." Eight
monks then came, to torment them; however, they did not accept
their advice, but Grietgen said, "Take off your long robes and
teach yourselves, before you undertake to teach others." They
were led to death like' sheep to the slaughter, the monks
accompanying, them, to whom they said:."Stay back; let us in
peace, for we know you well, and do not wish to hear you."</p>

<p>Having ascended the scaffold, Joris said to the people, "Be
it known to you, that we do not die for theft, murder, or
heresy." At this the monks became enraged, and contradicted
it.</p>

<p>They then fell upon their knees, prayed to God, and arose
and kissed each other with the kiss of peace. But when they
with glad countenances addressed the people, the monks, to
hinder them, went and stood before them; but one of the people
cried out, "You furious antichristians, stand back, and let them
speak."</p>

<p>Wouter said, "Citizens of Ghent, we suffer. not as heretics
or Lutherans, who hold in one hand abeer mug, and a testament
in the other, thus dishonoring the Word of God, and dealing in
drunkenness; but we die for the genuine truth." The executioner
then hung each of them by a rope to a stake, but did not
strangle them. They then strengthened each other, saying, "Let
us fight valiantly, for this is our last pain; hereafter we
shall rejoice with God in endless joy." Matt. 25: 23. As they
were hanging in pain, before the fire was kindled, Joris fell
through the rope, and Wouter cried, "O brother, be of good
cheer!""O Lord!" exclaimed Joris,"in Thee do I trust;
strengthen my faith." Luke 17:5. The fire then commenced to
burn, and they cried out, "O God Father, into.Thy hands we
commend our spirits." Thus they offered up their sacrifice
according to the will of the Lord, and their faith was tried
like gold in the fire, and found good, and so accepted of
God.</p>

<h2>CATHARINE BURNED AT THE STAKE, A. D. 1551</h2> 

<p>Eight days after the sacrifice of the preceding persons, a
woman named Catharine was also sentenced to the fire. While yet
in prison, she was greatly tormented by the monks, in order to
make her apostatize, but she said, "I stand so firmly to my
faith that for it, to the honor of God, I will suffer my self
to be burned at the stake. What would you do for your faith?
not much, I think. Hence repent, before you be brought to
shame."</p>

<p>Having been sentenced to be burned alive, and on her way to
death, she was saluted by a brother. When she arrived on the
scaffold, her hands were untied at her request. She then knelt
down, and prayed fervently to God for strength, which He also
gave her; for when she had arisen, and was tied to the stake,
she boldly said, "I am put to death for the truth's sake;
whatever you are able to inflict upon me, I am freely ready to
suffer." A seducer then came up, to comfort and strengthen her,
. as he said, but she replied, "Be still, I am tired of your
tormenting; forbear comforting me, and comfort yourself; for He
whose name I suffer, shall now be my comfort.".</p>

<p>Thereupon, calling with a firm confidence upon God, she was
burned alive in the sight of all men, steadfastly offering up
soul and body to God, as a burnt. sacrifice.</p>

<h2>BROTHER JOHN BAIR, OF LICHTENFELS, A. D. 1551</h2> 

<p>In the year 1528, on the Wednesday after All Saints Day,
Brother John Bair of Lichtenfels, was apprehended for the faith
and the divine truth, and was confined for twenty-three years
in a tower at Bamberg, in Franconia, on account of his
constancy, as is seen from the following letter, written by him
from there to the elders of the church. It reads thus, "Dear brethren, I have received the writing tablets and the
account of the doctrine and faith</p>

</div><div id="505"> 

<p>of our religion, as also six candles and pens; but most
important, the Bible, I did not receive, as is written in the
forepart of the tablets; but it is my request, that you will
send it to me, if it can still be found; for I would like to
have it above all things; if it can be according to the will of
God; for I am sadly in want of it, and suffer great hunger and
thirst for the Word of the Lord these many long years. To God
and His church I make this complaint; the days of my miserable
imprisonment are twenty years, wanting eight weeks; the
Wednesday after All Saints Day will be the anniversary. I John
Bair of Lichtenfels, the most miserable of the miserable, and
the most forsaken of the forsaken, captive in Jesus Christ our
Lord, again make the complaint to God and His angels, and to
all His laborers and churches. Now, my most dearly beloved
brethren and sisters in the Lord, pray to God for me, that He
will deliver me from this peril and great distress, a distress
which is unspeakable; this God knows, and I poor man, and you
know it with me. Adieu."</p>

<p>Written at Bamberg, in a dark dungeon, in the year 1548.</p>

<p>After this writing, he remained in prison three years
longer, that is, twenty-three years in all; when, in the year
1551, he cheerfully fell asleep in the Lord, in his prison, and
obtained the martyr's crown.</p>

<br />

<h1>JEROME SEGERS, WITH HIS WIFE LIJSKEN DIRCKS, 
AND BIG HENRY, A. D. 1551</h1>

<p>In the year of our Lord 1551, Jerome Segers, with his wife
Lijsken Dircks, and Big Henry fell into the hands of the
tyrants, for the testimony of Jesus, at Antwerp in Brabant.
They suffered many severe torments and sharp examinations, but,
through the grace of God, endured them all. And as they,
through faith, were so firmly bound to their Captain Christ
Jesus, that nothing could induce them to apostatize, they
brought Jerome Segers and Big Henry to the slaughter, on the
second day of September, A. D. 1551. Both, each at a stake,
surrendered their bodies in great steadfastness to God as a
well pleasing sacrifice. Lijsken Dircks, the wife of Jerome
Segers, who was pregnant, was (after her delivery) thrust into
a bag early in the morning, between three and four o'clock, and
murderously thrown into the Scheldt and drowned, before people
were up. Nevertheless, there were some that saw it, who
testified to her firm and steadfast faith unto death. They now
rest together under the altar. Read the following beautiful
letters written by them, which attest their strong faith, firm
hope and ardent love to God and His holy truth.</p>

<h2>A LETTER FROM JEROME SEGERS, WRITTEN IN THE<br />
PRISON AT ANTWERP, TO HIS WIFE LIJSKEN,<br />
WHO WAS ALSO IMPRISONED THERE<br />
A. D. 1551</h2> 

<p><i>Always fear God</i></p>

<p class="c3">In narrow prison walls I lay, well guarded and
contined;</p>

<p class="c3">Because for Christ I testified, sore troubles 1
did find;</p>

<p class="c3">But it cometh from the Lord,</p>

<p class="c3">Who to me doth strength afford.</p>

<p>Grace, peace, joy, gladness consolation, a firm faith, and
good assurance, together with an ardent love to God, I wish to
you, my most beloved wife, Lijsken Dircks, whom I wedded before
God and His holy church, and thus took to wife, according to
the command of the Lord; may consolation, gladness and joy be
increased and multiplied to you my dear wife.</p>

<p>I earnestly pray the Lord, that He will comfort you, and
remove from you that which is too grievous. I well know, my
chosen lamb, that you are in great sorrow on my account; but
lay aside all sorrow, and look to Jesus the Captain and
Finisher of our faith, and let us henceforth walk in all
righteousness and holiness, as children of peace, and let us
make good use of the time of grace, and consider what great
mercy the Lord has shown us. O my dear wife, remember how
faithful a God we serve; He will not let us be confounded.
Remember how faithfully He led the children of Israel with an
outstretched arm, from Pharaoh's house of bondage, and out of
Egypt, through the Red Sea, and remember how they had to
prepare themselves, before they could go out, and how they did
eat the paschal lamb with unleavened bread. They had to eat the
paschal lamb standing, and the unleavened bread which they had,
they bound up in their clothes, and began to go out to the
wilderness. And the angel of the Lord went before them, by day
in a pillar of cloud, and by night in a pillar of fire, and
thus He gave them light. But when they were closely pressed by
Pharaoh and his host, the people began to murmur against Moses;
for they had not firm confidence in the Lord, that He would
lead them out. But the Lord told Moses, what He would do, and
how He would show His power on Pharaoh and his host; and He
commanded Moses, to take the rod and smite the sea; and when
Moses smote the sea, it dried up, and the waters were divided,
and stood like walls to the right and to the left, so that they
went through the sea on dry ground. Pharaoh followed with his
host, and was drowned, with all his lords and people; but
Israel passed through unharmed, and praised and thanked God,
that He had delivered them from Pharaoh's house of bondage. But
they were not yet in the promised land; they came into the
dreadful wilderness, where there was no bread. The bread which
they had brought from Egypt, was but a small quantity; it was
the unleavened dough which they had bound up in their clothes,
when they left Egypt. Then they</p>

</div><div id="506"> 

<p>were troubled, because they had nothing to eat; but the Lord
fed them with bread from heaven.</p>

<p>So also, my most beloved wife, we have not gained all, when
we have confessed the truth, separated ourselves from the
world, and renounced all lusts and desires; but we must also
fight against the enemies, that is, we must here contend
against emperors and potentates, and the princes of this world.
We must suffer in this world; for Paul has said that all that
will live godly in Christ Jesus shall suffer persecution. I
Tim. 3:12. We must overcome the world, sin, death and the
devil, not with external swords or spears, but with the sword
of the Spirit, which is the Word of God, and with the shield of
faith, wherewith we shall be able to ward off all sharp and
fiery darts of Satan, and with the helmet of salvation on our
head, and with the breastplate of righteousness, and our feet
shod with the preparation of the Gospel. If we are thus
strengthened with these weapons, we shall get through the
wilderness with Israel, and overcome and withstand all our
enemies: they shall be confounded, who fight against the truth.
II Tim. 3:8. Now, when the children of Israel were out of the
wilderness-the dreadful and horrible wilderness, where the
serpents spewed fire,-after they had been wandering forty years
through it, had passed through so many dangers, and taken so
many cities and countries on this side of Jordan; they
nevertheless were not yet in possession of the promised land,
for they had not yet crossed the Jordan; however, the Lord
showed Moses the promised land from afar. O my clear wife, I
have also seen the promised land from afar; I hope soon to come
into the beautiful city of which John writes; which is greatly
adorned; her foundations are twelve precious stones, and her
walls and streets are of, pure and clear gold; and the city has
twelve gates, each gate of one pearl; and there is no night
there, for the Lord her God lightens her. Rev. 2'1. And the
Lord told Moses, that he should not lead the people into the
promised land; but Joshua brought them into it, and the Lord
led them over Jordan dry-shod, and commanded them to keep His
commandments and laws, and He should drive out their enemies
from before them. But when they transgressed His commandments
and laws, the Lord delivered them into the hands of their
enemies, so that they were defeated by them. After they had
passed over Jordan, they still did not have the promised land,
which flowed with milk and honey; but they had to take it by
sheer force, destroy all their enemies, and burn the cities
with fire. So must also we take the promised land by force; for
Christ says that the kingdom of heaven suffers violence. Not
until now have I known what it is to contend; no one knows it
better than he who has tried it, such is the subtlety with
which they come to seduce us.</p>

<p>Know, that I received your letter through my mother. I read
it with tears. I thank you, that youso affectionately comfort
me thereby, and I rejoiced when I heard that you are so well
contented.</p>

<p>Let me inform you, my chosen and beloved wife Lijsken, that
I have been before the margrave. He had with him two
Dominicans, two judges, and the clerk of the criminal court. He
asked me whether I had changed my mind yet, and added that he
had prevailed upon these two good men or lords, to try and win
my soul, if I would repent. I replied that I would not forsake
my faith, since it was the truth. They then asked me what my
faith was, I said to the monks, "Ask the margrave, I have
confessed my faith to him; ask him." They tormented me much,
but I would not tell them anything. They asked whence I knew
that it was the truth-whether God had spoken orally with me.
When they could get nothing else out of me, my confession was
read, namely, that I had no regard for the sacrament. I
said, "No, it is nothing more than a god of bread." The priests
were angry, because I thus despised their god. They all wished
to talk with me. I said, "I will not hear you, nor talk with
you; but let my brother come here to me, and I will talk with
you, and confess our faith."</p>

<p>They then asked me whether I was not strong enough in my
faith, since I appealed to my brother.</p>

<p>I replied, "Yea, my faith is strong enough; but that you may
not pervert our words."</p>

<p>They then said, "We shall not pervert your words."</p>

<p>I said, "I know you and your roguery well."</p>

<p>The margrave said, "It shall be granted to you.</p>

<p>I understood him to say, that he should bring a Bible with
him.</p>

<p>The priests said that when the children are baptized, they
then have faith.</p>

<p>I laughed at it, and said, "Why then do you not go into
Turkey, and baptize the Turks; if thereby men become believers,
as you say, they would all become believers."</p>

<p>They replied, "Though the Turks should be baptized, they
would still remain Turks."</p>

<p>They importuned me greatly, to apostatize, and become a
child of the Roman church. And the margrave and the judges felt
such unrighteous compassion for me, that they said, "If your
life should be spared, and you should repent and become a good
child of the Roman church, I should have good hopes of you; for
you have been brought to this in your youth and innocency. I
well know by whom (he meant Jelis of Aix-la-Chapelle); and
because you descended from such good parents, and your mother
is almost dead with grief."</p>

<p>I replied, "Though the door should stand open, and you should
say: 'Go, only say, "I am sorry;" I should not go; for I well
know that I hold the truth.'</p>

<p>The margrave then said, " I shall cause you to be burnt
alive, if you will not hear." I laughed again, and said, "All
that you inflict upon me for</p>

</div><div id="507"> 

<p>my faith, I will willingly suffer." He said, "His wife is
the greatest heretic in the city."</p>

<p>I cannot thank the Lord enough for all the great strength
and power which Ht gives me in this distress. I perceive now,
that the Lord is with us; for He helps us so faithfully out of
all distress (Psalm 91:15); He is such a faithful Captain, He
gives His servants such courage and strengthens them, that they
are not afraid (Job 5:22); they, neither fear nor tremble,
because of the great love which they have to their heavenly
Father: for Paul says, "Who shall separate us from the love of God? shall,
tribulation, or distress, or persecution; or famie, or
nakedness, or peril or sward? As it is written, For thy sake we
,are killed all the day long; we are accounted as sheep for the
slaughter. Nay, in all these things we are more than,
conquerors through him that loved us. For I -am persuaded that
neither death, nor life, nor angels, nor principalities, nor
powers, nor things present, nor things to come, nor height, nor
depth; nor, any other creature, shall be able to separate us
'from the love of God, which is in Christ Jesus our Lord." Rom.
8:35-39.</p>

<p>Therefore, my most beloved wife Lijsken,.,redeem the time,
be patient in tribulation, continue instant in prayer, and look
constantly ,to the. beautiful promises that are promised us
everywhere, if we persevere unto the end. And let us guard well
the treasure; for we have this treasure in earthen vessels (II
Cor. 4:7), and cannot conceal. it;"it breaks out everywhere; it
is far too'precious to be hid. We rejoice greatly in. this
treasure, which treasure is our faith, hope, and love; and
these will not leave us destitute, even though they put us
singly into dark dungeons, separated. from one another. The
treasure is of such a nature that it will not be hid; one calls
to the other, and so pours out his treasure, that it may be
seen. We are so cheerful, eternal praise and thanks be to the
Lord! we call, we sing with each other, we have such-joy..in
comforting and strengthening each other; the Lord gives us such
strength and power, that we cannot thank Him sufficiently for
the great grace which He shows ds. Mal. 3:16, "For which cause
we faint not; but though our outward rnan perish, yet the
inward man is renewed day by day. For.our light affliction,
which is but for a. moment; worketh for us a far more exceeding
and eternal weight of glory; while we look riot at the things
which are seen, but at the things which are not seen." II Cor.
4:16-18.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear wife, cease not to serve the Lord thy God
with the whole heart, and to follow His footsteps;"For we know
that, if our .earthly house of this tabernacle were dissolved,
we have a building of God, a house not made with hands, eternal
in the heavens. 'For in this we groan, earnestly desiring to be
clothed upon with -our .house which is from heaven . . . not
for that we, would be' unclothed, but clothed upon . . . for
whilst we areat home in the body, we are absent from the Lord."
Mark 12:30; I Pet. 2:21; II Cor.-5:1, 2, 4, 6.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear wife, give diligence that you pass
the,time of your sojourning here in fear and trembling (I Pet.
1:17); not with such fear and trembling. as that we should fear
the. world, and tremble before it, because they rage so against
us; but we are to fear and tremble before the Lord, so that we
shall keep His commandments and statutes, and thus pass the
time of our sojourning here in the fear of the Lord, and
receive the end of our faith, even the salvation of our souls;
then shall we rejoice forever with the Lord, and go to meet Him
in the resurrection of the dead. Isa. 51:11; Philip. 3:11.
Therefore do not fear the world; for the very hairs of your
head are all numbered; they have no power, except it be given
them from above. Matt. 10:30; John 19:11. And Christ says, "Be
not afraid of them that kill the body; but fear him, who after
he has killed the body. has power to cast the soul into hell;
there shall be weeping and gnashing of teeth, and their worm
shall not die, and they shall have no rest day nor night." Luke
13:28; Isa. 66:24; Rev. 14:11. May the Almighty, eternal and
strong God so strengthen and comfort you with His blessed Word,
that you will remain faithful unto the end, and you shall also,
come under the altar to all the dear children of God, where all
tears shall be wiped from our eyes. Rev. 2:10; 6:9; 21:4. There
all tribulation will have an end, and there shall our vile body
be glorified, and be like unto the image of His glory. Philip.
3:21. Then shall our weeping be turned into laughter, and our
sorrow into joy (John 16:20); then shall we; who for a little
while have been despised and rejected, yea, persecuted and
dispersed, and put to death with great ignominy, pain and
reproach, for the testimony of Jesus Christ, triumph forever,
and live eternally with the Lord. We shall be clothed with
white robes, as John testifies in his Revelation concerning the
souls of them that were slain for the Word of God, and for the
testimony which. they held. And they lay under the,altar, and
they cried with a loud voice, saying,"How long, O Lord, holy
and true, dost thou. not judge and avenge our blood on them
that dwell on the earth? And white robes were given unto every
one of them; and it was said unto them, that they should rest
yet for a little season, until their fellow servants also and
their brethren, that should be killed as they were, should be
fulfilled." Rev. 7:9; 20:4; 6:9-1.1.</p>

<p>Oh, what a glorious people shall we be; when we shall be
with that great multitude of which Esdras writes, and John in
his Revelation, says, "I beheld, and, lo, a great multitude,
which no man could number, of all nations, and kindreds, and
people, and tongues, stood before the throne, and before the
Lamb, clothed with white robes, and palms in their hands; and
cried with a loud voice, saying, Salvation to our God which
sitteth upon the throne, and unto the Lamb. These are they</p>

</div><div id="508"> 

<p>which came out of great tribulation, and have washed their
robes and made them white in the blood of the Lamb. Therefore
are they before the throne of God, and serve him day and night
in his temple: and he that sitteth on the throne shall dwell
among them. They shall hunger no more, neither thirst any more,
neither shall the sun light on them, nor any heat. For the Lamb
which is in the midst of the throne shall feed them, and shall
lead them unto living fountains of waters: and God shall wipe
away all tears from their eyes." Rev. 7:9, 10, 14-17. Esdras
also declares of the same multitude, "that they stood upon Mount
Sion, and were clothed in white, and that in the midst of them
stood one taller than all the rest, who gave palms into the
hands of every one, and set crowns upon every one of their
heads." II Esdras 2:42, 43, 46. And John says, "I saw as it were
a sea of glass mingled with fire; and them that had gotten the
victory over the beast, and over his image, and over his mark,
and over the number of his name, stand on the sea of glass,
having the harps of God. And they sing the song of Moses, the
servant of God, and the song of the Lamb." Rev. 15:2, 3.
Behold, my dear wife, what glorious promises we everywhere
find, which God will give to all His dear and true children who
here faithfully adhere to Him, who have ended their lives to
the praise of the Lord, and washed their robes, and made them
white in the blood of the Lamb. I Cor. 2:9.</p>

<p>O my dearly beloved wife, I cannot thank the Lord enough for
all His great goodness shown to me; He gives me such strength
and power that I cannot express it. Oh, now I experience that
the Lord is a faithful helper in tine of need; He does not
forsake those that trust in Him, for He that trusts in the
Lord, shall not be confounded. Isa. 45:17; Rom. 9:33. He will
keep us as the apple of His eye; He will deliver us from all
the power of the devil, and the tyranny of this world; yea, He
will keep us, that we shall not go into hell, if we remain
faithful to Him unto the end; for Christ says, "He that shall
endure unto the end, the same shall be saved." Matt. 24:13.</p>

<p>O my dearly beloved wife, continue faithful to the Lord unto
death; for the crown is not at the beginning, nor in the
middle, but at the end. If you continue faithful to the Lord,
He will not forsake you; He will give you the crown of eternal
life, and lead you into His kingdom. Jas. 1:12. He will crown
you with glory and honor; and will wipe away all tears from
your eyes.</p>

<p>Dear Lijsken, if He will wipe away all tears, tears must
here first be shed. Matt. 5:4. He will heal us from our
sufferings; hence we must first suffer in this world. Yea, we
must fight and contend against ferocious lions, dragons, and
bears (Ps. 91:13) , yea, against the wicked and perverse
generations of vipers (Matt. 3:7) and serpent rulers, and
against the subtle serpents of this world, and the wicked seed
of Cain; for Paul says that we wrestle not against flesh and
blood, butagainst the rulers of darkness, and the
principalities and powers of this world, yea, against the
spirits that work in the air, which is the old serpent and
Satan (Rev. 20:2), who, as Peter says, walks about as ,a
roaring lion, seeking whom he may devour. I Pet. 5:8. Therefore
defend yourself diligently, with prayer and supplication to the
Lord, and hold fast to the doctrine of Jesus Christ our
Saviour, that you may receive the end of your faith, even the
salvation of your soul. Fight with Paul the good fight.
Herewith I commend you, my dearly beloved wife and sister, to
the Almighty, eternal and strong God, and to the word of His
rich grace, that you may be able to stand against all the gates
of hell. Amen.</p>

<h2>A LETTER FROM JEROME SEGERS TO THE BRETHREN<br />
AND SISTERS</h2> 

<p>The eternal joy, peace and grace of God the Father; and the
unfathomable mercy, favor, and love of the Son, our Lord Jesus
Christ, who has been sent through grace, by God the Father, to
the salvation of all those that are born again with Him,
through His imperishable Word or Gospel, and do His will; and
the deep and unspeakable consolation, power, strength and
communion of the Holy Ghost, who is sent by both from heaven,
to the everlasting consolation, joy, and gladness of all true,
penitent and obedient children of God, who have amended their
life, and thus have risen with Christ, through His Gospel, into
newness of life. May this only God strengthen you all in His
eternal truth, and uphold you with the mighty Word of His grace
in all righteousness, holiness and truth unto the end, and keep
your understanding, and your hearts and minds, in Christ Jesus.
To Him be praise, honor, glory, might, power, and strength
forever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>My dearly beloved and chosen brethren and sisters, and all
lovers of the unfeigned and eternal truth, I wish you the true,
penitent faith, which works by love, and avails before God, and
a pure, chaste and holy conversation and walk in the fear of
God, and an ardent love to God our heavenly Father, and your
neighbor, and to His eternal, clear and unchangeable truth. And
I pray the Lord for you day and night without ceasing, that He
will open the eyes of your understanding, and enlighten your
hearts with knowledge, that you may know that it is the truth,
and that He will strengthen you with His divine Word, and
confirm you in the faith, that you may walk in this truth, in
all humility and meekness, being a light to all men, and may
continue steadfast unto the end. I also pray the Lord, that He
will keep you from all ravening wolves, that have gone out from
us, and will yet rise up among you, who will not spare the
flock, and from all false; heretical and satanic teachers, who
rise up under the name of Christ, and come forth in a semblance
of holiness, as though they were sent by Christ, while they
have proceeded</p>

</div><div id="509"> 

<p>from and are sent by the devil. Acts 20:29; II Cor.
11:15.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear brethren, be vigilant, watch and pray;
for it is very necessary; and remember after, my departure,
that I warned you from. prison against false prophets. Thus,
with the help of God, I have briefly written to you, and with
Peter exhorted you, well knowing that shortly I must put off my
mortal clothing and sleep with my brethren and sisters in
Christ. Though you are yourselves taught and strengthened in
this present truth, I nevertheless deem it profitable to
admonish you yet a little more, if haply thereby someone may be
bettered, edified and strengthened, the name of the. Lord be
praised and thanked, and I be remembered;how I have been an
example unto you in that which the Lord gave me, and have
walked among you in, all humility. Tit. 2:7.</p>

<p>Hence I admonish you now, my dearly beloved brethren and
sisters in the Lord, and beseech you with Paul, by the mercies
of God, that you present your bodies a living sacrifice, holy,
acceptable unto God, which is your reasonable service. And be
not conformed to this evil, wicked and perverse world; but he
ye transformed by the renewing of your mind, that you may prove
what is that good, and acceptable, and perfect will of God.
Rom. 12:1, 2; Eph. 5:17.</p>

<p>O my dear brethren, I earnestly beseech you, that you will
all amend your lives, and forsake the world and its lusts, and
will look to the life of Christ, how He walked before us; for
John says, "He that would boast of Christ ought himself also so to
walk, even as he walked." I John 2:6.</p>

<p>Behold, my dear friends, it is not enough that we are
baptized in the name of Christ, that we are called brethren or
sisters of Christ, and bear the name of Christians. Oh, no, all
this cannot save; for John says, "Little children, let no man
deceive you: he that doeth righteousness is righteous. He that
committeth sin is of the devil. In this the children of God are
manifest, and the children of the devil." John 3:7, 8, 10. And
Christ says, "Ye are my friends, if ye do whatsoever I command
you." John 15:14: Again, "If a man love me, he will keep my
words and commandments; and lie that hath my commandments and
keepeth 'them, he it is that loveth me." John 14:23, 21. For
John says, "He that saith he loveth God, and keepeth not His
commandments, is a liar, and the truth is not in him." I John
2:4; And you know that a liar has no part in the kingdom of
God. Rev. 21:8. Therefore, be not Christians with the mouth,
nor with the tongue, but in deed and in truth. I John 3:18. For
it is utterly in vain to bear the name of Christ, so long as we
are not conformed to Him in word, work and thought; for Paul
says, "Whom he did foreknow, he also did predestinate to be
conformed to the image of his Son, that 'he might be the
first-born among many brethren." Rom. 8:29. If He then has
called and predestinated you, use diligence that you become
conformed to Him,so that you may be found true Christians in
deed when you come into the tribulation in which we now are;
for though we are in it now, tomorrow you may also be in
it. Therefore watch and pray; for you know neither the day nor
the hour; and be diligent to please the Lord; for we must all
appear before the judgment seat of Christ; that everyone may
receive the things done in his body, according to that he hath
done, whether it be good or bad. I Thess. 4:1; II Cor. 5:10.
.</p>

<p>Now, as the Lord is to be feared, I counsel and humbly
beseech you, to conform your life to the Gospel. For, to. bear
the name of a Christian, .and to be called a brother, avails
nothing; but the fulfilling of the commandments of God alone;
for I have: seen many among us who boast of being Christians;
who love Christ with the tongue, but with the deed forsake Him
(Tit. 1:16), which is greatly to be deplored; for they are like
counterfeit money, which from the outside seems to be good
gold; but, when brought to the touchstone, or to the fire, it
is nothing but copper within. Thus they walk among the pious,
as though they were true Christians; but when the Lord begins
to try them in tribulation, it is seen that all is built upon
the sand,.and that they love their belly more than Christ, as
appears now in the case of those that are in bonds with us; for
so long they allowed themselves to be called pious brethren,
but now they talk differently. Matt. 13:21; 7:26; Rom.
16:18.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dearly beloved brethren and sisters in the
Lord, all who desire to offer up an acceptable sacrifice to the
Lord, take us for an example (Jas. 5:10) and be followers of
us, and be no longer so slothful or lukewarm in.love; so that,
when you are also imprisoned, you will not sorrow because you
did not lead a better life; for with this the devil tempts us
night and day. Hence I warn you, out of brotherly love, to take
heed to yourselves while you have time; for Paul says, "The
grace of God that bringeth salvation hath appeared to all men,
teaching us that, denying ungodliness and worldly lusts, we
should live soberly, righteously, and godly, in this present
world, looking for that blessed hope-, and the glorious
appearing of the great God and our Saviour Jesus Christ; who
gave himself for us, that he might redeem us from all iniquity,
and purify unto himself a peculiar people, zealous of good
works" Tit. 2:11-14; Eph. 5:2.</p>

<p>Behold, my dear friends, such a people Christ has chosen,
who are not vain or light-minded, but who, by patient
continuance in well-doing, seek for eternal life; hereunto he
has called and chosen us, that we should be holy and without
blame before him in love; for such a holy church he has chosen,
which has not spot or wrinkle, but that should walk holily and
unblamably before him in love. Rom. 2:7; Eph. 1:4; 5:27.
Therefore be holy in all your conversation; since it is
written, "Ye shall be holy, for I am holy." Lev. 11:45. Oh, see
my dear brethren, it is time for you to take heed; for</p>

</div><div id="510"> 

<p>the axe is now laid at the root of the trees; every tree
which bringeth not forth good fruit shall be hewn down, and
cast into the fire. Matt. 3:10."For not every one that saith
unto me, Lord, Lord, shall enter into the kingdom of heaven;
but he that doeth the will of my Father which is in heaven."
Matt. 7:21. For,"being dead unto sin, and purified by the
knowledge of the truth, you must not be empty, lest the devil
take with him the seven spirits and return into you, and the
last state be worse than the first." Rom. 6:11; Matt.
12:45., "Let not sin reign therefore in your mortal body, that ye
should obey it in the lusts thereof. Neither yield ye your
members as instruments of unrighteousness unto sin; but yield
yourselves unto God, as those that are alive from the dead, and
your members as instruments of righteousness unto God;"
and"pray that your flight be not in the winter, neither on the
Sabbath day;" and be not found in darkness, dear brethren, lest
that"day should overtake you as a thief." Rom. 6:12, 13; Matt.
24:20; I Thess. 5:4. For if ye do so, ye shall be children of
light and of the day; for they are not the children of God, who
boat of the faith, but do not fulfill it with the works, for
Christ says, "If ye know these things, happy are ye if ye do
them." John 13:17. For he that knows it, and does it not, is
likened unto a fool; and the servant that knows the will of his
lord, and does it not, shall be beaten with many stripes. Matt.
7:26; Luke 12:47. But those who believe with the heart, and do
as they believe, are the true children of God, and shall also
be accounted believers in the kingdom of heaven. Hence I
counsel you, and beseech you with Peter, that, giving all
diligence you add to your faith, virtue; and to virtue,
knowledge; and to knowledge, temperance; and to temperance,
patience; and to patience, godliness; and to godliness,
brotherly kindness, and to brotherly kindness, charity. For if
these things be in you, and abound, they make you that ye shall
neither be barren nor unfruitful in the knowledge of our Lord
Jesus Christ; but an entrance shall be ministered unto you
abundantly into everlasting life. But he that lacketh these
things is blind and cannot see afar off, and hath forgotten
that he was purged from his old sins. II Pet. 1:5-8, 11, 9.
Therefore, purify your souls in obeying the truth, in true
unfeigned love of the brethren, and love one another with _a
pure heart fervently: being born again, not of corruptible
seed, but of incorruptible, by the Word of God, which liveth
and abideth forever. I Pet. 1:22, 23. Gird up the loins of your
mind, be sober and place all your hope in God; have fervent
love among yourselves, and be of one mind; mind not high
things, but condescend to men of low estate; let no corrupt
communication proceed out of your mouth nor spend your time in
vain conversation, which increases only unto more ungodlinegs;
but speak that which is good to the use of edifying that it may
minister grace unto the hearers: let your speech be always with
grace, seasoned with salt (Col. 4:6);for Peter says, "If any
man speak, let him speak as the oracles of God;" (I Pet. 4:11)
that you may be an example unto all men; for Christ says, "Ye
are the salt of the earth; but if the salt have lost his savor,
it is thenceforth good for nothing, but to be cast out, and to
be trodden under foot of men</p>

<p>. Neither do men light a candle, and put it under a bushel,
but on a candlestick, and it giveth light unto all that are in
the house.""Ye are the light of the world.""Let your light so
shine before men, that they may see your good works, and
glorify yout Father which is in heaven." Matt. 5:1316. And
Peter says, "Have your conversation honest among the Gentiles;
that, whereas they speak evil of you, as of evil doers, they
may be ashamed that falsely accuse your good conversation in
the fear of God." I Pet. 2:12, 3:16.</p>

<p>He further says, "He that will love life, and see good days,
let him refrain his tongue from evil, and his lips that they
speak no guile: let him eschew evil, and do good; let him seek
peace and ensue it. For the eyes of the Lord are over the
righteous, and his ears are open unto their prayers, but the
face of the Lord is against them that do evil." I Pet. 3:10-12.
Hence, take good heed, that the angry face of the Lord do not
look down upon you; for in the last day the ungodly shall
exclaim, "O ye hills and mountains, fall upon us, and cover us, that
we may not see the angry face of him that sitteth on the
throne." Hos. 10:8; Rev. 6:16. And Christ says, "Except your
righteousness shall exceed the righteousness of the scribes and
Pharisees, ye shall in no case enter into the kingdom of
heaven." Matt. 5:20. Again,"Except ye be converted, and become
as little children, ye shall not enter into the kingdom of
heaven." Matt. 18:3.</p>

<p>See; my dear brethren and sisters, if you are not thus
humble, give diligence that you become so; for Christ's words
are no lies; He says, "Many will say to me in that day, Lord,
Lord, have we not eaten and drunk in thy presence? and in thy
name have cast out devils? But then will I profess unto them, I
never knew you: depart from me, ye that work iniquity." Matt.
7:22, 23; Luke 13:26. And Paul says, "He that lives after the
flesh, shall die." Rom. 8:13. O friends, there is a great
number of you, that are like unto asses and mules, which are so
lazy that they have to be urged on with blows and kicks. Oh,
this is not walking according to love. Lift up the hands that
hang down, and the feeble knees; you have slept long enough,
for Paul says, "Awake thou that sleepest, and arise from the
dead, and Christ shall give thee light!" Heb. 12:12; Eph.
5:14."If ye then be risen with Christ, seek those things which
are above, where Christ sitteth on the right hand of God. Set
your affections on things above, not on things of the earth."
Col. 3:1, 2.</p>

<p>O my dear brothers and sisters in the Lord, be followers of
God, as chosen children and walk in love, as He also hath loved
us and hath given Him-</p>

</div><div id="511"> 

<p>self an offering and sacrifice to God for a sweetsmelling
savor. . But fornication, and all uncleanness, or covetousness,
let it not be once named among you, as becometh saints.;
neither filthiness, nor foolish talking, nor jesting, which are
not convenient, but rather giving of thanks. For this ye know,
that no whoremonger, nor unclean person, nor covetous man, who
is an idolater, hath any inheritance in the kingdom of Christ
and of God. Be ye not therefore partakers with them. For ye
were sometime darkness, but now are ye' light in the Lord: walk
as children of light; for the fruit of the Spirit is in all
goodness and righteousness and truth. And have no fellowship
with the unfruitful works of darkness, but rather reprove them.
Ephesians 5:1-5, 7-9, 11. I therefore admonish you, as fellow
helpers, for the Lord -says, "I have heard thee in a time
accepted, and in a day of salvation have I succored thee:
behold, now is the accepted time; behold, now is the day of
salvation." Let us give no offense in anything, that the
ministry be not blamed; but in all things approve ourselves as
the ministers of God, in much patience, in afflictions, in
necessities, in distresses,. in stripes, in imprisonments, in
tumults, in nakedness; in perils,under the sword; by pureness,
by knowledge, by long suffering, by kindness, by the Holy
Ghost, by love unfeigned, by the word of truth, by the power of
God, by honor and dishonor, by evil report and good report, as
deceivers, and yet true; as unknown, and yet well known; as
dying and, behold, we live; as chastened and not killed; as
poor, yet making many rich; as having nothing, and yet
possessing all things. II Cor. 6:1-10; 11, 26, 27.</p>

<p>My dear friends, my mouth is open ,unto you, out of
brotherly love, and I humbly beseech you, let this mind be in
you, which was also in Christ Jesus, showing such love with the
deed among yourselves; for this is the message that ye heard
from the beginning, that ye should love one another; for he
that loveth not, abideth.in death. But whoso hath this world's
good, and seeth his brother have need, and shutteth up his
bowels of compassion from him, how dwelleth the love of God in
him? My dear brethren and sisters in the Lord, let us no longer
love in tongue, but in deed and in truth. II Cor. 6:11; Philip.
2:5; I John 3:11, 14, 17, 18; 4:8. Always remember the poor,
and let each give according to his ability, with joy; for God
loveth a cheerful giver, and Paul says, "He that sheweth mercy,
let him do it with cheerfulness." Tobit 4:7; II Cor. 9:6; Rom.
12:8. For, consider once, whether, if you were as fervent. in
love, as you have been in the world, you would not as easily
know to find two or three stivers to give to the poor, as you
found them for drinking or gambling purposes? Not my dear
friends, that I would burden or oppress you, only that each
show his love herein, according to his weak ability; for you
cannot take your possessions with you. You may take me for
an.example; for they have takeneverything, yea, all the money
we had, and asked us yet whether we did not have more.</p>

<p>It is therefore far better, that you help the poor with it,
than that the lord* have it, and if you are willing to give
your life for your brother, how much more ought you to assist
him with your temporal goods! that it be as it is written, "They
that gathered much had nothing over, and they that gathered
little had no lack." I John 3:16; Jas. 2:16; Ex. 16:18: And see
to it also, that all be done honestly, that it be as a matter
of bounty, and not as of covetousness, and that the offering be
acceptable unto the Lord: For the administration of this
service not only supplieth the want of the saints, but
aboundeth also in many thanksgivings to God. II Cor. 9:5, 12.
Hence give diligence, to show your love herein, that the Lord
may be glorified and thanked thereby, and that you may approve
yourselves in all things as ministers of God. I Pet. 4:11. Read
what Paul says to the Corinthians; he will teach you how to
conduct yourselves herein; and I humbly beseech you, that when
you have read it, you will also act according to it; for it is
necessary.</p>

<p>Furthermore, I beseech all of you young married people, that
you live together in all humility, simplicity and harmony.
Young wives, submit yourselves unto your husbands, in the fear
of God: and you, young men, love your wives as your own selves;
support and bear them with all humility and kindness, and
affectionately admonish and instruct them with the Word of the
Lord; for you know neither the day nor the. hour when the Lord
shall separate you. I Pet. 3:l; Eph. 5:22; Matt. 25:13. Take me
and my wife for an example, how soon the Lord separated us, to
His glory. Hence; live together in all humility, so long as the
Lord permits you to be together: for your time is short here,
seeing the Lord delights to have His chosen with Him. Job 14:1.
And furthermore, I beseech you, my dear brethren, that you also
give diligence to get usury (Matt. 25:27); for I trust in the
Lord, that through seeing and hearing this, many shall yet turn
to the truth, and I will also do my best with those who come
here to see me. And gather the poor, scattered flock, for which
I am greatly concerned; for they scarcely know where to go or
dwell, and are in greater distress than we here. Acts 8:1-4.
But be of good cheer, my dear brethren and sisters in the Lord;
though we enjoy more freedom than you, be patient in your
persecution: you shall not have gone over the cities of Israel,
till the Lord shall deliver you. Matt. 10:23. Be diligent,
therefore, in assembling together, and in comforting and
admonishing one another with the Word of the Lord, that love
may not wax cold among you. Matt. 24:12.</p>

<p>Thus, admonish and instruct one another in the love of God:
and I -beseech you, not to forget us in your prayers, and now
and then to write a. letter to my wife, to comfort her, since
she will be con</p>

<br /><cite>*The worldly ruler.</cite> 

</div><div id="512"> 

<p>fined a long time yet. I would further tell you, that I am
in great joy, and cannot sufficiently praise and thank my Lord
day and night, for His great love shown us, in that He has made
both of us worthy to suffer for His name;. and for the power
and strength He shows in us, and for His promises given us; for
this is the hour for which I so long prayed the Lord, not
considering myself good enough, that I should be worthy to
suffer for His name. Therefore I am so rejoiced, because my
hour is come, that I shall be delivered from this flesh.</p>

<p>Thus strengthen yourselves in the, love of God, looking for
the mercy of our Lord Jesus Christ unto eternal life. Now unto
Him that is able to keep you from falling, and to present you
faultless before the presence of His glory with exceeding joy,
to the only wise God our Saviour, be glory and majesty,
dominion and power, both now and ever. Amen. Greet one another
with a holy kiss of peace. Jude 21, 24, 25; I Cor. 16:20.</p>

<p>Let all the friends hear this letter; for I have written to
you out of brotherly love, and am sorry that I can write to you
no more. I commend you all to the Lord. Salute G. S. H. D. in
the Lordwhom I sincerely love, and also all brethren and
sisters in the Lord. Receive this brief admonition in good part
(Heb. 13:22); for my spirit impelled me to admonish you a
little.</p>

<p>Written in prison, by me,</p>

<p class="c8">JEROME SEGERS.</p>

 
<h1>A LETTER FROM JEROME SEGERS, WRITTEN TO HIS 
WIFE LIJSKEN DIRCKS</h1>

<p>The grace and mercy of God the Father, the loving kindness
and love of the Son, and the communion and peace of the Holy
Ghost, who is sent us by the Father, through the name of the
Lord Jesus Christ, for the consolation and joy of all true and
faithful children of God, and by whom we are impelled, taught
and led; the same . keep your hearts, understanding and mind in
Christ Jesus, to the praise and glory of the Father, to the
salvation of your afflicted soul, and to the edification of all
brethren and sisters that fear and love the Lord; to this only
wise God, be glory, honor; power and strength, for ever and
ever. Amen.</p>

<p>I wish to you, my dear wife, a true, genuine, godly love, a
true, unfeigned, penitent faith, which works by love, a firm
hope and confidence in God, and a firm steadfastness in your
faith towards God the Father, and the Lord Jesus Christ. To Him
I commend you, and to the Word of His grace; and since I cannot
converse orally with you, my dear wife Lijsken, I have, with
the help of God, written to you a little from the Word of the
Lord; for though we are absent from each other in the flesh,
yet are we present in the Spirit; for I remember you day and
night in my prayers, beseeching the Lord to strengthen you with
His Spirit of truth, since I well know that you will have much
conflict yet, before you will be released; and I also knowthat
you will be greatly tempted by the cunning foxes and ravening
wolves, yea, which are much more lions and dragons; yea, a
generation of vipers, who will not spare your soul, but
destroy, devour and murder it.</p>

<p>Hence Paul says, "Beware lest any man spoil you through false
philosophy and the sleight of men, whereby they lie in wait to
deceive." Col. 2:8; Eph. 4:14. Yea, Christ Himself has warned
us in this respect, saying that in the latter days many false
prophets, and many false Christs, shall arise, insomuch that,
if it were possible, they should deceive the very elect; but
this is impossible: for the Lord preserves them with His strong
arm, so that the gates of hell cannot harm them. Matt. 24:24;
16:18. Yea, Paul says, "That in the latter times some shall
depart from the faith, giving heed to seducing spirits, and
doctrines of devils; forbidding to marry, and commanding to
abstain from meats, which God hath created." I Tim. 4:1, 3.
And, "Let no man deceive you with vain words: for because of
these things cometh the wrath of God upon the children of
disobedience." Eph. 5:6. Christ has also warned us of the
doctrine of the Pharisees; yea, of those who come in sheep's
clothing; for inwardly they are ravening wolves. Ye shall know
them by their fruits. Matt. 16:6; 7:15, 16. Even as Paul
says, "Marvel not, that the ministers of antichrist will
transform themselves into ministers of God; since Satan himself
can transform himself into an angel of light; for they come in
a feigned holiness, and will speak lies." II Cor. 11:14,
15.</p>

<p>Therefore see, my most beloved lamb, how faithfully Christ
and His apostles have warned us of the false and subtle
serpent, that we should not suffer ourselves to be deceived by
the old serpent, which is the devil and Satan, who seeks
nothing but to bring our souls into everlasting damnation, even
as Peter says that he walks about us as a roaring lion, seeking
whom he may devour; him resist with a firm faith. Rev. 12:9; I
Peter 5:8. Therefore I beseech you, my dear wife. from the
bottom of my heart, since we are so faithfully warned of the
false prophets, who have nothing but the doctrine of devils,
and seek nothing but to ruin and devour souls; therefore I
beseech you once more, not to hearken to them, and to have
nothing to do with them; for Paul says, "Have no fellowship with
the unfruitful works of darkness, but rather reprove them."
Eph. 5:11. Yea, John says that he that has not the doctrine of
Christ, has not God. II John 9. And Paul says, "Though an angel
from 'heaven preach any other Gospel- unto you than that which
I have preached unto you, let him be accursed." Gal. 1:8. If
they then have not God, and have nothing but a false,
heretical, accursed and devilish doctrine, how can they teach
us anything good? Therefore Christ and His apostles have so
faithfully warned us, that we should not suffer ourselves to be
deceived by the cunning foxes, and subtle philosophy and
craftiness; for there shall never any other foundation be laid,
than</p>

</div><div id="513"> 

<p>that is laid, namely Christ, upon whom you have founded and
built; and no other Gospel may be preached, than that which is
preached, in which you believe, and for the testimony of which
you are also in bonds.</p>

<p>Hence I beseech you, my dear wife Lijsken, by the mercies of
God, constantly to have the Word of the Lord before your eyes,
and not to suffer yourself to be moved from your faith, by the
sleight of men,'whereby they lie in wait to deceive you; for I
know that you will suffer much temptation yet. Therefore, my
most beloved, look not unto men; for cursed is the man, says
the prophet, that trusteth in man; yea, the fear of man
bringeth a snare, says the wise man. Jer. 17:5; Prov. 29:25.
And regard not the torture of flesh and blood; for this is the
heat of the sun, yea, the storms by which the work of the Lord
is tried. Matt. 13:6; 7:25. Hence confess Christ now, and He
shall confess us before His heavenly Father; for He will try
the third part with fire, as gold in the furnace, and all that
remains shall be found pure gold. Matt. 10:32; Zech. 13:9; I
Pet. 1:7. You have partly passed through the trial, and have
remained steadfast in it, eternal glory, praise, and honor to
the Lord, and may the gracious Lord: strengthen- you, that as
you have commenced, you may be found pure gold before God and
all His church.</p>

<p>Thus, my most beloved, continue steadfast in the doctrine of
Christ; for now is the day of which Christ spoke, that we
should be brought before lords and princes, for a testimony to
His name, and that we should be rejected by all men; but he
that shall endure unto the end, the same shall be saved. Matt.
10:18; 24:13. And Christ says, "If they have persecuted me, they
will also persecute you; and the time cometh, that whosoever
killefh you will think that he doeth God service. But these
things have I told you, that when the time shall come, ye may
remember that I told you of them. And these things will they do
unto you, because they have not known the Father nor me." John
15:20; 16:2, 4, 3. Behold, my dear wife, thus Christ has warned
us how they should deal with us. Therefore, my dear, fear not,
neither despond, though you now are confined with Daniel in the
den of lions; trust in the Lord, and He will preserve you, that
they shall not destroy you; He will also deliver you from their
teeth, that they shall not tear you. Forsake Him not and He
will not forsake you; for He says, "He that despiseth you,
despiseth me; lie that persecuteth you persecuteth me; he that
toucheth you, toucheth the apple of mine eye." Luke 10:16; Acts
26:14; Zech. 2:8.</p>

<p>If they then do not persecute us, but the Lord, fight
valiantly, as a pious soldier of Christ, and contend for His
glory. And even as He fought unto death, so by the grace of God
do also you; for Paul says, "If a man strive for masteries, yet
is he not crowned, except he strive lawfully." II Tim. 2:5.
Therefore, my dear, put on the whole armor ofGod, and be not
ashamed to confess His Word before men, but always remember the
words of Christ, "Whosoever shall confess me before men, him
will I confess also before my Father which is in heaven; but
whosoever shall be ashamed of me and of my words, of him also
shall I be ashamed before my heavenly Father. For whosoever
shall seek to save his life shall lose it; but whosoever loses
his life for the sake of the Gospel, shall find it. But he that
loveth aught more than me, cannot be my disciple; yea, no man,
having put his hand to the plow, and looking back, is fit for
the kingdom of God. And Paul says: It is a faithful saying: For
if we be dead with him, we shall also live with him; but if we
deny him, he also will deny us." Eph. 6:11; Matt. 10:32; Mark
8:38; Matthew 16:25; 10:37; Luke 9:62; II Tim. 2:11, 12.</p>

<p>Hence, my most beloved, do not forsake the Lord; for we are
nothing but dust and ashes, yea, nothing but mortal flesh,
which must die in dishonor, but is raised in glory. Gen. 18:27;
I Cor. 15:43. Be patient, therefore, in tribulation; for it is
the true way, which leads to life eternal, which all the saints
of God, the prophets and apostles, yea, Christ Himself went.
all having to drink of this cup. Therefore look not to death,
but through death, lest another come before you, and take your
crown. Hence, my most beloved, be long-suffering in your
tribulation, and patient in suffering, and wait for your
deliverance, even as the husbandman waits for his fruits; for
blessed is the man that endureth temptation: for when he is
tried, he shall receive the crown of life, which the Lord hath
promised to them that love Him. James 1:12. For Christ
says, "Blessed are they which are persecuted for righteousness'
sake: for theirs is the kingdom of heaven." Matt. 5:10. Behold,
we count them happy which endure, says James. Jas. 5.:11.
Christ also suffered for us, leaving us an example, that we
should follow His steps: forasmuch then as Christ hath
suffered, arm yourself likewise with the same mind. I Peter
2:21; 4:1. With this agree the words of John, who says that
Christ laid doyen His life for us, and that we ought also to
lay down our lives for the brethren. I John 3:16.</p>

<p>Hence, be not discouraged, chosen and beloved, at their
threatening; but praise and glorify the Lord in this matter;
for Christ says, "Blessed are ye, when men shall revile you, and
persecute you, for my name's sake. Rejoice, and be exceeding
glad; for great is vour reward from my Father which is in
heaven." Matt. 5:11, 12. My dear, this is not said that we
should be sad, but that we should rejoice that we are worthy to
suffer for His name. Paul says, "Ye have not received the spirit
of bondage again to fear; but the spirit of adoption, whereby
we cry, Abba, Father. The spirit itself beareth witness with
our spirit, that we are the children of God; if so be that we
suffer with him, that we may be also glorified together; for
the sufferings of this present time are not worthy to be
compared</p>

</div><div id="514"> 

<p>with the glory which shall be revealed in us; for eye hath
not seen, nor heart known, neither mouth confessed, but God
alone, what shall be revealed to those that love him, and keep
his word." Rom. 8:15-18; I Cor. 2:9. And Paul says that it is
not enough for you to believe in Him, but also to suffer for
His name. Phil. 1:29.</p>

<p>Hence, my most beloved, be a willing bride, and prepare for
the conflict; for He will not suffer you to be tempted above
that you are able; but will with the temptation also make a way
for you to escape. I Cor. 10:13. For though a mother forget her
child, yet will I not forget thee, says the Lord. Isa. 49:15.
He will preserve you as the apple of His eye. Zech. 2:8.
Therefore, fear not men, who perish like grass (Isa. 51:12);
but valiantly journey with Joshua and Caleb to the promised
land; wait with Noah for the day of the Lord; for Christ
says, "My sheep hear my voice, and they follow me; but the voice
of strangers they hear not; and no man shall pluck them out of
his hand, since it is impossible, that the elect of God should
be deceived;" as Paul says, "Who shall separate us from the love
of God?" Nay, no torments of this world.;"for we know that all
things work together for good to them that love God; for our
light affliction, which is but for a moment, worketh for us a
far more exceeding weight of glory." John 10:27; Rom. 8:35, 28;
II Cor. 4:17. Since it is the will of the Lord, I hope that
this your trial will also be for your good; for the Lord has
appointed your time, which we cannot pass. Hence, fear not, for
God is your Captain; He is your strength; He is your guide (II
Esd.16:76); forsake Him not; He will not forsake you; trust in
Him, and you shall not be ashamed (Ps. 31:1), be faithful unto
death, the crown of life is prepared for you. Rev. 2:10. I
desire willingly to offer up my body to the praise of God, yea,
not only my body, but if every member, yea, every hair were a
body, I would, through the power of God, offer them all up to
the praise of the Lord, in order to obtain His promises; for
what manner of love the Father hath bestowed upon us, that we
should be called the sons of God; therefore the world knoweth
us not, because it knew Him not."Beloved, now are we the sons
of God, and we know that, when he shall appear, we shall be
like him." John 3:1, 2. Yea, Peter says that we shall be
partakers of His divine nature; yea, we shall be where Christ
Himself will be, and shall with Him judge all nations; yea, we
shall follow the lamb whithersoever he goeth; yea, we shall
sing the new song on Mount Sion, and we know assuredly that, if
our earthly house of this tabernacle were dissolved, we have a
building of God. eternal in the heavens. II Peter 1:4; John
12:26; Matt. 19:28; Rev. 14:4; II Esd. 2:42; II Cor. 5:1. Who
would exalt this corrupt, decaying flesh, which is nothing but
a heap of earth, over these beautiful promises 1 O see, what
beautiful promises Christ has given His own, who remain
steadfast unto the end; for thereis no other way to eternal
life, than this way; for all righteous souls, from the
beginning, have had to suffer, and thus gain possession of the
kingdom of God. Gen. 4:8. Hence, my most beloved wife, since
there is no other way, be a willing bride, prepared to receive
your bridegroom; and you shall then be crowned with praise and
honor.</p>

<p>Thus, my most beloved, I have written a few things, with
which you may somewhat strengthen yourself through the Word of
the Lord; for Christ says, "The world shall rejoice, and ye
shall be sorrowful; but be of kind cheer; I have overcome the
world; and your sorrow shall be turned into joy, and your joy
no man taketh from you; for he that worketh in us is stronger
than he that is in the world." John 16:20. And John says that
our faith is the victory that overcometh the world. I John 5:4.
Always remember Lot's wife (Gen. 19:26), and the man of God who
was slain by the lion, because he had eaten bread contrary to
God's command, being deceived by the false prophet. I Kings
13:1. Thus you also suffer yourself in no wise to be deceived
by false prophets; but fight with the prophet David against
Goliath, and you shall devour him like bread; for the kingdom
of heaven suffereth violence, and the violent who remain
steadfast take it by force; for Joshua and Caleb took the
promised land by force, and those that were not steadfast,
could not enter into it. Hence, be not dismayed though you are
tried here for a little season; for it is His will. Therefore,
receive willingly from His hand whatever He sends you; for Paul
says, "We know that all things work together for good to them
that love God." Rom. 8:28. For Christ means to show His
wonderful power and strength in you, against the dragons and
the generation of vipers, yea, against the ravening wolves, who
daily resist Christ, and fight against you to destroy you. But
be bold and trust in Christ; He will not forsake you; for He is
your strength. He cares for you (I Peter 5:7); He is your
Protector, by whom you shall overcome all your adversaries; for
He shall feed you with the bread of life, yea, with the bread
of understanding, and give you the water of wisdom to drink,
and shall comfort you in all your tribulation, and impress into
your heart a firm and steadfast faith, which they shall not be
able to resist. Sir. 15:3. For He who has begun this good work
in you, will, through His grace and power, also carry out and
finish it, to His praise, to the salvation of your soul, and to
the edification of all them that fear the Lord. Phil. 1:6. To
this God, who can deliver you from all tribulation, and
preserve you f rom all the snares of the devil, and from all
false doctrine, be praise, honor, power and strength, for ever
and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>See, my dear wife, as I can not help you with my weeping, or
with my blood, I have written a few things; to comfort you, and
for a memorial or a testament, that you may remember me by it,
how I walked before you; for I hope to seal this letter</p>

</div><div id="515"> 

<p>with my blood, namely,. that it is nothing but the pure
truth, for which I desire to lay down my life, to the praise of
the Lord and the edification of all that fear' Him. I pray the
Lord that He will let you follow me as I through His grace hope
to go before you; and I trust in the Lord that He will let you
follow me thus, and have confidence in you, that you will
follow me thus steadfastly, through the grace of the Lord; and
'I pray the Lord, that He will let the fruit grow up to His
praise, that it inay also be found worthy to suffer for His
name. Thus I have commended the fruit to the Lord, who is more
able to preserve you and it, than I am. And that the Lord will
preserve you, I do not doubt. I hope that my blood will be the
seal of this letter.</p>

<p>Thus I commend you to the Lord, and to the word of His
grace, that He will keep you in all righteousness, holiness and
truth; 'and though we must separate here, I know, and firmly
trust in the Lord, that we shall be together in life eternal;
hence, I will freely bring my offering.</p>

<p>Oh, that I might suffer for you; I should gladly offer my
flesh for you. I am sorry that I can write to you no, more. 1.
herewith commend you to the Lord. Be not solicitous about the
child; for my friends will take good care of it, yea, the Lord
will care for it. Hendrick of Deventer salutes you much in the
Lord, whom he entreats day and night for you,. that you may
continue steadfast unto the end.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER LETTER FROM JEROME SEGERS TO HIS<br />
WIFE</h2> 

<p>Grace, peace, heartfelt joy, through the knowledge of Jesus
Christ, be with you, my dear wife Lijsken in the Lord. Z wish
you, my dear wife Lijsken, an ardent love to God, and a joyful
mind to Christ Jesus. Know, that I remember you day and night
in my prayers, supplicating and sighing to God for you; for I
am very sorrowful on your account, because you have to be
imprisoned so long; and I would fain wish, had it been themill
of the Lord, that you had been released; but now the Lord has
willed it otherwise; because He means to try you, and to reveal
His power and strength in you, against all those who resist the
truth. Hence, I can do nothing against the will of the Lord,
lest I .tempt Him; but I will much rather praise and thank Him,
that He has made us both Worthy to suffer for His name; for
thereto are all His chosen lambs elected; for He has redeemed
them from among men, as first fruits unto God. Rev. 14:4.</p>

<p>Furthermore, my most beloved, I have greatly rejoiced until
this hour, praising and thanking the Lord for having fitted us
for this purpose, but when I heard from you, that your sorrow
was greater than your lips could express, it caused me to weep
many tears, and grieves my heart; for it is a great affliction.
And I understood that it is because you often told me to depart
from Assuerus,which I did not do; this has cost me many a.
tear, and I am very sorry; yet I can do nothing against the
will of the Lord. (Rom, 9:19), and had it been His will, He
would have provided a deliverance for us; but He has appointed
our bounds, which we can not pass. Job 14:5; Tob. 13:2. Thus,
we cannot escape from the Lord; hence let us not be grieved at
His work, but much rather, as Christ says, let us rejoice and
be exceedingly glad, for great is our reward in heaven; and as
Peter says, we ought to praise and glorify God on this behalf.
Matt. 5:12; I Peter 4:16. O my dear; this is not said that we
should sorrow. Be patient, therefore, in your tribulation and
suffering; for Paul says that all things work together for good
to them that love God; hence, I have confidence in the Lord,
that it will also be for your good, that you have to be
imprisoned so long. Therefore receive willingly at His hand
whatever He sends you; for He suffers no one to be tempted
above that he is able. Hence, be a partaker of the sufferings
of Christ; for all that are without chastisement, are bastards,
and not sons. Heb. 12:8. . And James says, "Blessed is the man that endureth temptation: for when he is
tried, he shall receive the crown of life, which the Lord has
promised to them that love him." James 1:12.</p>

<p>Be therefore a follower of Christ, patiently and joyfully
take up your cross, and follow Him with gladness, since He has
suffered so much for our salvation; hence let us also suffer
for His praise. Since our hour has now come, let us joyfully
strive for the crown of life, which is prepared for us.</p>

<p>Therefore I pray you, my love, that you will not sorrow any
longer; for the Lord will preserve you as the apple of His eye;
yea, though a ,mother forget her child, yet shall I not forget
thee, says the Lord, yea, my sheep hear my voice, says the
Lord, and they follow me, and no man shall pluck them out of my
hand. Therefore, my most beloved, be content, and trust in the
Lord; He will not forsake you. Moreover, I learned partly from
my sister, that you also grieved because you were not more
patient with me. See, my dear lamb, you have not been obstinate
towards me, and we have not lived together otherwise than we
were in duty bound to live; why then will you grieve. Be
content; Christ will not lay it to your charge, for He will not
remember our sins. I thank the Lord, that you have lived so
humbly with me as you did. Gladly would I be imprisoned for you
for a whole year, on bread and water, yea, and then die, a
tenfold death, if you could be released. Oh, that I could help
you with my tears and with my blood, how willingly should I
suffer for you; but my suffering can avail you nothing. Hence,
be contented; I will pray the Lord still more for you. I have
written this letter in tears, because I heard that your grief
is so very great. I pray you, that you will write to me how you
are. Herewith I commend you to the Lord.</p>

</div><div id="516"> 

<h2>A LETTER FROM LIJSKEN, JEROME'S WIFE, WHICH<br />
SHE WROTE TO HIM IN PRISON AT<br />
ANTWERP, A: D. 1551</h2> 

<p>Grace and peace be to both of us from God the Father, and
the love of the Son, and the commun-. ion of the Holy Ghost be
with us, to the strengthening, consolation, joy, and salvation
of our souls.</p>

<p>My beloved husband in the Lord, know that at first the time
seemed very long to me, because I was not used to imprisonment,
and heard nothing but temptations to depart from the Lord. They
said, "Why do you trouble yourself with the Scriptures; attend
to your sewing. It seems that you would follow the apostles;
where are the signs which you do? They spake with different
tongues, after they had received the Holy Ghost." Mark 16:17;
Acts 2:4. And they said, "Where is your language which you
received through the Holy Ghost?" But it is sufficient for us;
that we have believed through their word, as John tells us,
where Christ says, "Neither pray I for these alone, but for them
also which shall believe on me through their word." John 17:20.
Herewith I commend you to the Lord; the grace of God be with us
always.</p>

<p>Thanks be to God the Father, who had and showed such love to
us, that He gave His dear Son for us; may He give us such love,
joy, wisdom, and such a steadfast mind, through Christ, and
through the power of the Holy Spirit, that we may prevail
against all ravenous beasts, dragons, serpents, and all the
gates of hell, which are now using great subtlety to seize,
deceive, destroy, and seduce our souls. Well may we therefore
humbly pray the Lord without ceasing, day and night; for the
devourer walks about us, seeking whore he 'may devour; for we
are not ignorant of his designs. But though they are very
crafty, yet the Lord's hand is not shortened, in them that love
Him, and do His will; for the eyes of the Lord are upon those
that love Him, and His ears are open unto their cry; but the
face of the Lord is against them that do evil. Isa. 59:1; Ps.
34:15, 16. Hence, let everyone take good heed, that the face of
the Lord be not against him; for the soul that sinneth, it
shall die, unless he repent before the Lord come. But we are
not assured of the time when the Lord will come; for He shall
come as a thief in the night. I Thess.. 5:2. Hence, we may well
pray the Lord for one another, that our flight be not on the
Sabbath Day, when we are idle, nor in the winter, when we have
no fruit on our trees, for every tree which bringeth forth not
good fruit shall be hewn down, and cast into the fire; but
every tree that beareth good fruit, He shall purge, that it may
bring forth fruit abundantly. Matt. 24:20; 3:10; John 15:2. The
mouth of the Lord also tells us, "If any man sin willfully . . .
there remaineth no more sacrifice for sins, but a certain
fearful looking for of judgment and fiery indignation, which
shall devour the adversaries. The law of Moses was so
strict,that he who transgressed it had to die without mercy
under two or three witnesses; of how much sorer punishment
shall he be thought worthy, who hath trodden under foot the Son
of God?" Heb. 10:26-29. The Holy Ghost also declares, "If we be
dead with him, we shall also live with him; if we suffer we
shall also reign with him: if we deny him, he also will deny
us: if we believe not, yet he abideth faithful: he cannot deny
himself." II Tim: 2:11-13."Seeing we are compassed about with
so great a cloud of witnesses, let us lay aside every weight,
and the sin which doth so easily beset us, and let us run with
patience the race that is set before us, looking unto Jesus the
author and finisher of our faith; who for the joy that was set
before him endured the cross, despising the shame; who
threatened not, when he suffered for our sins unto the
salvation of our souls." Hebrews 12:1, 2; I Peter 2:23. Thus we
also, my most beloved in the Lord, to His praise, and to the
consolation of all dear friends. I wish to us both the
crucified Saviour for an everlasting joy and strength. I trust
to the Lord, who alone is wise, and who has given His wisdom
only to the simple, the innocent and outcasts of this world,
that He will comfort us till our travail is over. Rev.
12:5.</p>

<p>My dear husband in the Lord, whom I married before God and
His church, and with whom they say I have lived in adultery,
because I was not married in Baal; but the Lord says, "Rejoice,
when all men shall speak evil of you, for my name's sake:
rejoice, and be exceeding glad; for great is your reward in
heaven." Matt. 5:11, 12.</p>

<p>Know, that I have wept much, because you were grieved on my
account, having heard that I said that I had often spoken to
you about moving away from Assuerus, and that you did not do
it; be content concerning this, my most beloved in the Lord, if
it had not so been the will of the Lord, it would not have
happened; the Lord's will must be done, for the salvation of
both our souls, for He will not suffer us to be tempted above
that we are able. Be of good cheer therefore, my most beloved
in the Lord, and rejoice in Him as before, praising and
thanking Him for having chosen us to be imprisoned so long for
His name, having been found worthy thereto; He knows for what
end He has ordered it so. Though the children of Israel were a
long time in the wilderness, yet, had they been obedient to the
voice of the Lord, they would have entered the promised land
with Joshua and Caleb. Thus also we are here in the wilderness,
among these ravening beasts, which daily spread out their nets,
to catch us (Ps. 35:8); but the Lord, who is so strong, does
not forsake His own, who trust in Him; He preserves them from
all evil, yea, as the apple of His eye; hence let us be content
in Him, joyfully and patiently take up our cross, and wait with
a firm confidence for the promises which He has given us, not
doubting them, for Hie is faithful that promised; that we may
be crowned on Mount Sion, and adorned with palms, and may
follow the</p>

</div><div id="517"> 

<p>Lamb, I pray you, my beloved in the Lord, be of good cheer
in Him, together with all dear friends, and pray to the Lord in
my behalf. Amen.</p>

<h2>A LETTER FROM JEROME SEGEPS TO HIS WIFE</h2> 

<p>Grace and peace be with you from God the Father, and the
mercy and love of the Son, and the power and communion of the
Holy Ghost strengthen your faith, heart, mind and understanding
in Christ Jesus. Amen. This I wish to my beloved wife, whom I
before God and His holy church espoused as my own wife. Even as
Abraham took Sarah, Isaac, Rebecca, and Tobias, the daughter of
his uncle to wife; so did I take you to wife, according to the
Word and command of God, and not as this wicked, blind world.
For this reason I praise and thank the Lord night and day, that
He spared us so long, till we became acquainted in part with
each other, and had attained unto the knowledge of the truth;
on which account they say that we lived in adultery, because we
were not married like this idolatrous generation, in an
idolatrous, carnal, vain, proud, and gluttonous manner, which
is nothing but an abomination in the eyes of God. On this
account they slander us, as they did Christ. Matt. 12:24. And
though they may tell you to attend to your sewing, this does
not prevent us; for Christ has called us all, and commanded us
to search the Scriptures, since they testify of Him; and Christ
also said that Magdalene had chosen the better part, because
she searched the Scriptures. Matt. 11:28; John 5:39; Luke
10:42. Moreover, my most beloved, though they ask you where
your signs and tongues are, this must not hinder you; for the
believers whom Peter and John baptized did not speak with
tongues, but it was enough for them, that they believed in
Christ. Acts 2:38. And also Stephen, who was full of the Holy
Ghost, did not speak with tongues; nor did any of the bishops
or teachers who were with Paul, perform signs, and speak with
tongues; yet they taught the Word of God blamelessly. And Paul
says that the Holy Ghost distributes His gifts in the church;
one has the gift of healing; another of prophecy; another of
speaking with tongues; another the working of miracles; another
the gift of exhortation; another of showing mercy; another of
firm faith; and all these worketh the Holy Spirit, through whom
they mutually assist each other to their own edification, and
thus grow into a holy temple; and let every man abide in the
same calling wherein he was called. I Cor. 12:7; Eph. 4:16;
2:21; I Cor. 7:20. Moreover, it is enough for us, that Christ
prayed not only for His disciples, but also for those who
should believe on Him through their word. John 17:20.</p>

<p>Behold, my beloved wife in the Lord, how gladly the ravening
wolves would murder the souls of the simple, with their lies
and subtlety, whereby they lie in wait to deceive, in order to
bring your soul into eternal death. Hence, beware of them,
andhearken not unto them, since they are very crafty; but do as
Christ says, "My sheep hear my voice; they hear not the voice of
strangers; hence no man shall pluck them out of his hand." See,
my beloved, how Christ has warned us of this time; let us
therefore look well before us, lest the subtle serpent deceive
us. And know, that I have also been before the lords once, when
I called to you, and that I then spoke in such a manner, that
they let me in peace; though the others were arraigned twice
after this, yet I was left unmolested. Once I also had a
discussion with the priests in regard to the calling,* in which
I so reproved them with the word of the Lord, that they became
so angry that they struck on the table with their fists, and
did not know what to say; for they said that Peter was a pope,
and that St. Andrew read the first mass. I replied that they
could not prove it in truth, and told them they were seducing
spirits, and held the doctrine of devils. Then they went
away.</p>

<p>Moreover, know, my beloved wife in the Lord, I am sorry that
you wept; for, when I heard that you grieved, I prayed the more
fervently to the Lord, day and night, for you, and know
assuredly, that He will preserve you as the apple of His eye. I
constantly praise the Lord, that He has made us both worthy to
suffer for His name, for which cause I greatly rejoice. When I
read your letter, and learned how it was with you, and that you
wished the crucified Christ to me, for a salutation, my heart
and my spirit leaped up for joy in my body; so that I could not
finish reading the letter, but had to bow my knees before the
Lord (Eph. 3:14), and praise and thank Him for His strength,
consolation and joy, although I was afflicted on account of our
brethren and you, because you have to be imprisoned there so
long. I have committed you, together with the fruit, into the
hands of the Lord, being confident beyond a doubt, that He will
give you the same joy which He gives to me, and keep you unto
the end. I experience such joy and gladness in His promises,
that I never think on these torments, but only on the great
promises which He has given to those who remain steadfast unto
the end. I have such gladness, consolation and joy as I never
had, yea, such joy, that I cannot utter or describe it, yea,
that I did not believe that a person could have such joy in
prison; for day or night I can scarcely sleep for joy, nor
sufficiently thank and praise the Lord; for it seems as though
I had not been here a day yet. Sir. 43:30. Oh, that I might
break my heart into pieces, and give it to you and our
brethren! Oh, that I could help them with lny blood; I should
so gladly suffer for them I</p>

<p>O my beloved in the Lord, I now experience how mightily,
strongly and fatherly He preserves those who trust in Him, and
seek nothing but His glory; yea, what strength, consolation and
joy He gives them; and how ignominiously He permits</p>

<br /><cite>*Calling or sending of ministers.</cite> 

</div><div id="518"> 

<p>them to fall, who trust in men, and forsake and deny Him; so
that they get a torturing conscience, a sorrowful heart, and
dreadful horror, yea, look for nothing but eternal damnation
and the pain of fire, and expect to hear the terrible
words, "Depart from me, ye cursed, into everlasting fire; for
the face of the Lord is against them that do evil." Matt.
25:41; Ps. 34:16. Behold, therefore, my beloved wife in the
Lord, let us look unto Jesus the Finisher, how. He went before
us into death, for our salvation; for, behold, the crown of
life is prepared for us; we shall sit with Him upon His throne;
we shall be clothed in white robes. Herewith I commend you unto
the crucified Christ for consolation and joy; that He will keep
you, satisfy you with His divine Word, feed you with the bread
of life and of understanding, and give you to drink the water
of wisdom and the unadulterated milk, from the fountain of
life. May He keep your soul unto salvation. Amen.</p>

 
<h1>A LETTER FROM LIJSKEN, JEROME SEGER'S WIFE</h1>

<p>The grace, peace, joy and love left by Christ to His
disciples be unto you. I earnestly beseech Him, that He will
give us such love and such a steadfast mind, that we may be
found fit to receive the beautiful promises' which He has given
to us, if we continue steadfast unto the end. To this Christ be
praise and honor forever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>I cannot thank or praise the Lord sufficiently for the great
grace, the unfathomable mercy, and great love which He has
shown us, that we should be His sons and daughters, if we
overcome, even as He overcame. II Cor. 6:18; Rev. 3:21. Oh,
well may we say that true faith, which works by love, and which
will bring us to glory, if we suffer with Him is actuated by
things not seen. Gal. 5:6; Romans 8:17; Heb. 11:1. Let us
consider, dear friends in the Lord, what great love worldly men
have towards one another. There are some in prison, I have
heard say, who rejoiced when about to go to the rack, because
they should then be nearer those whom they loved, though they
could not come together in person. Hearken, my beloved brethren
and sisters in the Lord, if the world has such love, what love,
then, ought we to have, who expect such glorious promises! I
also have before me the beautiful example of a bride, how she
adorns herself, to please her bridegroom of this world. Oh, how
ought we then to adorn ourselves, to please our bridegroom! Oh,
that we might be adorned as were the five wise virgins with oil
in their lamps, to meet our bridefzroom, that we might also
hear the sweet voice, "Come, ye blessed, inherit the kingdom of
my Father." I pray the Lord day and night, to give us such
fervent love, that we may not regard the torments which they
may inflict upon us; yea, may say with the prophet David, "I fear nothing of all that men can do unto me." Ps. 118:6.
And this our pain, which is light and temporal, is not worthy
to be compared with theglory which shall be revealed in us.
Rom. 8:18.</p>

<p>Since, then, it is the will of the Lord that with Daniel I
must remain so long in the den of lions and await the howling
and ravening wolves and lions, and the old serpent, which was
from the beginning, and shall be unto the end; therefore, 1
entreat all my dear brethren and sisters, to remember me in
their prayers; I will gladly do the same; according to my
ability. O my dear friends, how can I sufficiently thank my
heavenly. Father, that He has made me poor sheep fit to remain
in bonds so long for His name's sake. I pray the Lord day and
night, that this my trial may tend to the salvation of my soul,
to the praise of the Lord, and to the edification of my dear
brethren and sisters. Amen.</p>

<p>Nicholas op de Suyckeruye brought two priests to me, to
instruct me, whom I answered by the grace of the Lord. They
told me they were sorry that I had embraced this opinion, which
they could not call a faith, but only an opinion, since we
observed nothing commanded by the Christian church. I replied
to them, "We desire to do or believe nothing but what the church
of Christ commands us; but we will have nothing to do with the
temple of Baal, or with other temples made with hands, after
the doctrines and, commandments of men, and not after Christ.
With these we will have nothing at all to do; for Stephen says
that the Most High dwells not in temples made with hands; but
he said that he saw the heavens opened, and Christ sitting on
the right hand of His Almighty Father. Acts 7:48, 56. And Paul
says, that we are the temple of the living God; if we do His
will, He will dwell and walk in us." II Cor. 6:16. They said
that they were the sent, and those who sit in Moses' seat. I
replied to them, that in that case the woes spoken of in Matt.
23 applied to them. They asked me whether I meant to say that
he who taught me these things, was sent of God. I said, "Yes, I assuredly know that he is sent of God." They then
asked me, whether I knew how a teacher ought to be. I
answered, "A teacher must be the husband of one wife, blameless,
having his children in subjection, no drunkard, winebibber or
whoremonger." I Tim. 3:2. They replied, "If we do wrong, it will
fall on our own heads; the Lord is merciful." I then asked,
whether they would sin upon the mercy of God, and said it was
written that we should not add sin unto sin, and say, "The Lord
is merciful." Sir. 5:5. We said much more; but it would take
too long to relate it.</p>

<p>I told them that they were ever learning, and never able to
come to a right knowledge of the truth. II Tim. 3:7. They then
said that Christ said to His apostles, "To you it is given to
understand, but to others in parables." Matt. 13:11. I
replied, "They who now rightly understand it, to them it is also
given."</p>

<p>Finally they crossed themselves over and over and said that
I should find it out when I should stand before the judgment.
That is true, I said: we</p>

</div><div id="519"> 

<p>shall there be appointed judges, to judge this disobedient
and adulterous generation. Matt. 19:28. With this they went
away. I also told them, that they had come from Satan, to
murder my soul.</p>

<p>Once more I wish to my dear husband in the Lord, and to
myself, the crucified Christ, as an imperishable joy and love,
forever. Amen.</p>

<p>Know, my dear husband in the Lord, when I read that you
rejoice so greatly in the Lord, I could not finish reading the
letter, but had to pray the Lord, that He would give me the
same joy, and keep me unto the end, so that we may offer our
sacrifice with joy, to the praise of our Father who is in
heaven, and to the edification of all dear brethren and
sisters. Herewith I commend you to the Lord, and to the word of
His grace. Know, that I thank you very much for the letter you
wrote me. The grace of the Lord,be with us always.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER LETTER FROM LIJSKEN TO HER HUSBAND</h2> 

<p>The abundant grace of God be with us both always, and the
love of the Son, and His unfathomable mercy, and the joy of the
Holy- Ghost be with us forever. Amen. To Him who has begotten
us again from the dead; be praise forever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>I wish to us both the crucified Christ for the protector and
guardian of our souls, may He keep us in all
righteousness, holiness and truth unto the end. And He will
preserve us as His sons and daughters, yea, as the apple of His
eye; if we hold the beginning of our confidence steadfast unto
the end. Hebrews 3:14. Hence, let us trust in Him, and He will
never forsake us, _ but preserve us, as He has preserved His
own from the beginning of the world, and will let no temptation
come upon us, 'but such as is common to man. Heb. 13:5; 1 Cor.
10:13.</p>

<p>The Lord is faithful, says Paul; He will not suffer us to be
tempted above that we are able. Blessed be the God -and Father
of our Lord Jesus Christ, who has made us fit to suffer a
short, transient' affliction for His name, through His
beautiful promises, which He has given us and all those who
remain steadfast in His doctrine. We may suffer here a little,
but we shall be greatly: rewarded. Wisd. 3:5.</p>

<p>My dear, beloved husband in the Lord, you have partly passed
through the trial, and have remained steadfast, eternal praise
and glory to the Lord for His great grace! And I beseech the
Lord with tears, to make me also fit; to suffer for His name;
for all His chosen lambs are appointed thereto, since He has
redeemed them from among men, to be the first-fruits unto God.
Rev. 14:4. Yea, we know, as Paul says, that if we suffer with
Him, we shall also reign with Him; if we be dead with Him, we
shall also live with. Him. II Tim. 2:12, 11. Hence, let us not
despise the chastening of the Lord; for, whom He loveth He
chasteneth, andscourgeth every son whom He receiveth, as Paul
tells us. Heb. 12:5, 6. Herewith I commend you to the Lord, and
to the word of His grace and glory; with which He will glorify
us, if we adhere to it unto the end. The grace- of the Lord be
with us.</p>

<h2>A LETTER FROM JEROME SEGERS TO HIS WIFE</h2> 

<p>The grace, joy, and peace from God the Father, and the
loving kindness and love of the Son, our Lord Jesus Christ, and
the communion and consolation of the Holy Ghost, strengthen,
console and confirm and keep us; both in all righteousness and
holiness unto the'end. To Him be praise forever and ever.
Amen.</p>

<p>I wish to my chosen wife inthe Lord, and to me, eternal joy,
and the imperishable and incorruptible life, and may He grant,
that we both adhere unchangingly to His divine Word and eternal
truth, unto the end; which He will also do, since He has
promised it to us, if we continue faithful in what He has given
us, and are willing to contend for it for His glory, even as He
contended for our salvation, and was obedient to His Father
unto death. If we also continue thus faithful unto death, we
shall receive the crown of life, and inherit eternal life with
Him, and He will never forsake us; for the Lord will or can do
nothing contrary to His Word, for His Word shall never pass
away. Matt. 24:35. And He has so faithfully promised to keep
us, if we do not forsake Him; so that no one shall pluck us out
of His hand; He will keep us as the apple of His eye, yea, as
His sons and daughters. For, behold, my beloved, how faithfully
He preserved those who faithfully served Him; even as Noah was
preserved in the ark, as Lot was led out of Sodom, as Jacob was
preserved from his brother Esau, who sought to kill hire, and
as Joseph was preserved from his brothers, the sons of Jacob,
Joshua and Caleb from all the heathen, and entered into the
promised land, David before Goliath; Susannah before the false
witnesses: Daniel from the lions-; and many other examples too
lengthy to recite. Hereby we may perceive, how faithfully He
preserves those who sincerely fear and love Him, and how
ignominiously they .fall who forsake Him, as we may see from
the beginning of the world, how it perished, on account
of its wickedness, and how Lot's wife was punished. Esau
could not find his birthright again, and the whole house of
Israel perished in the wilderness. See, my beloved wife, all
this the Lord permitted to happen not only for the sake of
those who had sinned, but also for our sakes, that. we should
see, how Christ is with the righteous, and, ,preserves them,
and how He forsakes and brings to nought the ungodly; for Paul
says, "Whatsoever things were written aforetime were written for
our learning." Rom. 15:4.</p>

<p>Hence, let us diligently take heed, that we seek, fear and
love the Lord from the bottom of our</p>

</div><div id="520"> 

<p>heart, faithfully serving, and not forsaking Him; for Christ
says, "He that is not with me is against me; and he that
gathereth not with me scattereth" (Luke 11:23); even as we
daily see how mightily He preserves those who trust in Him, and
how soon they fall who forsake Christ, and put their trust in
man. Therefore, my beloved wife in the Lord, let us trust in
the Lord Almighty, constantly look to Jesus, the Captain and
finisher of our faith, always keep the crucified Christ before
our eyes, faithfully follow Him as He went before us, and
patiently take up our cross, always remembering the words of
Christ, where He says that they shall kill us, and will think
that they do Him service; and remembering that this is told us
beforehand, that when it happens to us, we may not be offended;
for the servant is not greater than his lord. And these things
will they do unto you, because they have not known the Father,
nor Me. John 16:3.For the preaching of the cross is to them
that perish, foolishness, but unto us; the power of God. I Cor.
1:18. Hence, let us always remember the words of
Christ"Whosoever shall confess me before men, him will I
confess also before my Father which is in heaven. But whosoever
shall deny me before men, him will I also deny before my Father
which is in heaven, and before his holy angels." Matt. 10:32,
23. Let us firmly trust in Him, and He will not forsake us; for
He does not forsake His own, but He prayed H'is heavenly
Father, that where He is, He will that we shall be with Him.
John 17:24.</p>

<p>Hence, let the world call us heretics and Anabaptists and
condemn us as much as they please</p>

<p>for Paul says, "Who shall lay anything to the charge of God's
elect? It is God that justifieth. Who is he that condemneth? It
is Christ that died, yea rather, that is risen again, who is
ever at the right hand of God, who also maketh intercession for
us. He that spared not his own Son, but delivered him up for us
all, how shall he not with him also freely give us all things I
Now, if God so loved us, when we were yet enemies, how much
more shall we be preserved from wrath, seeing we are justified
through his blood: for being justified by faith, we have peace
with God through our Lord Jesus Christ, by whom also we have
access by faith into this grace wherein we stand, and rejoice
in hope of the glory of God. And not only so, but we glory in
tribulations also; knowing that tribulation worketh patience;
and patience, experience; and experience, hope; and hope maketh
not ashamed; because the love of God is shed abroad in our
hearts by the Holy Ghost which is given unto us." Rom. 8:33,
34, 32; 5:10, 1-5.</p>

<p>My dearly beloved, let us therefore firmly trust the Lord,
and patiently wait for His promises, even as the husbandman
waits for his fruits; and let us not forsake Him, and He will
not forsake us. I have committed us both and also the fruit
into His hands, to do His divine will with us, that His name
may be glorified thereby, and that it may tend tothe salvation
of our souls, and to the consolation and joy of all that fear
the Lord, and I firmly trust Him, and doubt not, that He will
preserve us as His sons and daughters, yea, as the apple of His
eye. Know, that I rejoiced greatly, when I read your letter and
that you write, that you pray the Lord with weeping eyes, to
make you fit to suffer for His name. My beloved, be not
anxious, but pray the Lord with a humble heart, to give us what
is best for our souls, which He will doubtless do, and will not
tempt us above that we are able. May He keep us in all
righteousness, holiness and truth, unto the end.</p>

<p>Know also, my beloved, that they greatly tortured me, to
find out the midwives where our sisters lay in childbed; but
the Lord, who kept my lips, was stronger than all their
tortures. Eternal praise and glory be to the Lord, who does not
forsake His own. They obtained no names from me, save one or
two, which they had read to me from a letter, and which I told
them, to see what they would say. But they asked me whether I
was making sport of them, and tortured me still more, demanding
that I should tell them concerning the women, and others, or
they would torture me till the next morning, and stretch me a
foot longer than I was. They told Gileyn to rack, and his
assistant racked vigorously, and Gileyn poured my body full of
water. They had me lying stark naked on the bench, with nothing
but the shirt to cover my shame. I was bound to the bench with
four cords, so that it seemed to me, as though my head and legs
were severed; but they obtained nothing more, praise and glory
be to the Lord. When they released me, two or three of them had
to lift me from the bench, and dress me; yea, it would not have
been possible to endure the pain without the help of the Lord.
They told me to consider the matter, and become a good son of
the Roman church, and that I should indicate all those whom I
knew, or they would deal more severely with me. I replied that
I had not erred, and would far rather die than forsake my
faith. They then said that they would come again; but they can
do no more than the Lord permits them. John 19:11. Eternal
praise to the Lord, who has made us fit for this, may He
further fit us to become children of His kingdom. Amen. My
beloved wife, I commend you to the Lord and to the Word of His
grace.</p>

<h2>A LETTER OF JEROME SEGERS TO BIG HENRY, WHO<br />
WAS ALSO IMPRISONED THERE, IN<br />
THE YEAR 1551</h2> 

<p>The grace and peace of God the Father, and the great mercy
and love of the Son, our Lord Jesus Christ, who was sent by the
Father, out of grace, for the salvation of all those who are
dead unto their sins, and thus have risen with Christ into
newness of life, and the eternal, unfathomable joy, consolation
and communion of the Holy Ghost, strengthen your heart,
understanding and mind in</p>

</div><div id="521"> 

<p>Christ Jesus. To Him be praise forever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>I wish you, Henry, my dear brother in the Lord, whom I love
from the bottom of my heart, for the steadfastness of our faith
in Christ Jesus, true, penitent faith, which works by love,
which you have, and a firm, constant mind, and steadfastness
unto the end in this same effectual, saving faith. Col. 2:5;
Heb. 3:14. I am greatly rejoiced at your steadfastness, that
you are again so cheerful and content, the Lord be praised
forever. I pray the Lord night and day, to strengthen you with
His divine Word, and confirm you in the faith, preserve you in
the den of lions, as He preserved Daniel and keep you with His
strong arm, and to give you the New Jerusalem -for an
inheritance, which He will also do, for He is faithful that
promised. Heb. 10:23.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear brother in the Lord, let us fight
manfully against all devouring beasts; for life is prepared for
us; and let us not be afraid of their threatenings nor be
terrified by their tortures, for they can do nothing without
the will of the Father. I Pet. 3:14; John 19:11. The Lord will
not suffer us to be tempted above that we are able. The Lord is
our Captain, whom will we fear? The Lord is with us, who can be
against us? For He will preserve us as the apple of His eye,
yea, as His sons and daughters; for no man shall pluck His
sheep out of His hand, yea, it is impossible for God's elect to
be deceived. Matt. 24:24.</p>

<p>Hence, behold my dear brother in the Lord, be not dismayed,
though they growl and snarl at you in an ugly manner; they can
do nothing else to you. Let us fight valiantly against all
dragons and lions. Put on the armor of God, take the sword of
the Spirit, and resist them undauntedly, and regard no one;
they will have to take to flight; for the sword which the Lord
has given us is much too sharp for them, and the Lord helping
us to fight, who is there able to prevail? For our God is a
consuming fire, which devours His enemies. Deut. 4:24.</p>

<p>Hence, I pray you, my dear brother, not to let it grieve
you, though they keep you so long in this den of lions; for
hereby the Lord tries us, since He tries His chosen as gold in
the furnace. Therefore be patient in your tribulation; for
where no conflict is, there is no victory; hence, we must have
conflict, if we are to overcome; but he that overcometh shall
inherit all things. Rev. 21:7. Let us, therefore, take up the
cross with humility and patience, and wait for our promises,
even as the husbandman waits for his fruits; and let us keep
the Lord before our eyes, and be faithful to Him unto death,
for we must here suffer a little, but we shall be greatly
rewarded; for He will set us upon His throne, and give us to
eat of the hidden heavenly bread, and make us pillars in the
temple of His God. Rev. 2:10; Wisd. 3:5; Rev. 2:17; 2:12.
Herewith I commend you to the Lord, and to the Word of His
grace; may He strengthen you inHis righteousness unto the end.
Furthermore, I let you know, that I have been told that you
heard I had forsaken the Lord; I was greatly surprised at.
this. It is not so, nor ever shall be; but they have said it to
draw you off and trouble you. They have lied about me; for I
have never stood otherwise in my faith, than is proper, and am
still of the same mind as I was when I lay with you, the Lord
be praised. I have never wavered, for I would rather be
tortured ten times a day, and ultimately be roasted on a
gridiron, than forsake my faith, which I have confessed.</p>

<p>Therefore, though they tell you ever so much about my having
apostatized, believe it not, for the devil does this, in order
to seduce and deceive you thereby, for by the grace of God I
shall never forsake the Lord. But I have been sick in my flesh
for many days; however, my spirit was so much the stronger. I
prayed the Lord, to send me still more suffering, if it would
conduce to my salvation, and He gives me more and more strength
and consolation, for which I cannot sufficiently thank Him.
Herewith I commend you to the Lord. When you sing aloud, I can
well hear you. I thank the Lord, that He still, gives you so
much strength that I hear you sing.</p>

<h2>LAST LETTER OF JEROME TO HIS WIFE, WRITTEN<br />
THE NIGHT WHEN HE WAS SENTENCED; HE<br />
WAS PUT TO DEATH ON THE 2d OF SEPTEMBER, A. D. 1551</h2> 

<p>Grace and peace from God the Father, the unfathomable mercy
of the Son our Lord Jesus Christ, and the loving kindness and
communion of the Holy Ghost be unto you, for an everlasting
consolation, joy, gladness, and strength in your bonds,
tribulation, sufferings, and vexation in your labor, and for
strength in your faith, love and tribulation. To Him be praise
for ever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>I wish unto you, my dearly beloved, chosen wife in the Lord,
the true, genuine, penitent faith, which works by love, and a
very firm, immovable, steadfast mind in my and your most holy
faith. I further wish you the crucified Christ for a
bridegroom, who has chosen you for a daughter, bride and queen.
To this King of the Most High, to the everlasting Father and
jealous, loving God, I have now commended you, my beloved in
the Lord, that He will now be your Comforter and Bridegroom,
since He has called and taken me first, with which I am well
content, seeing that it was the will of the Lord; eternal
praise and glory be to the Lord for His great power which He
has manifested in us.</p>

<p>Therefore, my most beloved in the Lord, do not complain, or
grieve much, because He has taken me first; for He has done all
for our best, that I should be an example unto you, and that
you may follow me as valiantly as I, through the grace of the
Lord, who has made us both worthy to suffer for His name, shall
go before you. Oh, my dear lamb, I humbly entreat you, not to
listen to the pa-</p>

</div><div id="522"> 

<p>pists or other sophists, but steadfastly to follow your
Bridegroom, your immovable Bridegroom. Follow His footsteps,
and fear not -their threats, nor let their tortures terrify
you; for they can do no more than the Lord permits them; they
cannot hurt a hair of your head without the will of the Father
which is in heaven. Matt. 10:30.</p>

<p>Hence, fear not, but continue firmly and steadfastly in the
doctrine of Christ, and in the right truth; for the Lord will
not forsake you, but will preserve you as the apple of His eye;
yea; as His daughter and child, since it is impossible for
God's elect to be deceived; for His sheep hear His voice, and
follow Him; but they hear not the voice of strangers. Hence, no
man shall pluck them out of His hand; for lie is their Shepherd
and Protector. Hence, fight valiantly, my chosen lamb, for the
glory of the Lord, even as He fought so valiantly, for the
salvation of our souls. Be therefore of good cheer, even though
you have to lie yet a little longer in this den of lions. Your
deliverance is nigh; it tarries not, but comes; and When He
comes that will come with power, He will receive you as His
bride and queen; for it is His pleasure to have His chosen with
Him, since He delights in beholding them; and the day of the
Lord is at hand. Habakkuk 2:3; Ps. 45:14; Isa. 13:6.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear wife in the Lord, fight valiantly now,
and fear not man, but rather say with Susanna, that you would
much rather fall into the hands of man, than into the hand of
God; for it is a fearful thing to fall into the hands of the
living God. Susanna 24; Heb. 10:31. Go to meet the Lord with
ardent love as you have done hitherto by the grace of the Lord,
who works in you; and fight valiantly, for the crown of life is
prepared for you, since to those that overcome all things are
promised, and they shall also inherit all things; for Christ
says, "Blessed are ye, when all men speak evil of you; for great
is your reward in heaven." Matt. 5:11. He also says, "Blessed
are they which are persecuted for righteousness' sake; for
theirs is the kingdom of heaven." The Lord also said that when
they have brought us before lords and princes, and tortured and
killed us, they shall yet think to have done Him service
thereby. John 16:2. Therefore, trust firmly in Christ alone,
and the Lord will not forsake you, and the crown of life is
prepared for you.</p>

<p>Herewith I will commend you to the Lord, and to the Word of
His grace, and take leave of you, here in this world; for I do
not expect to see your face any more; but I hope to see you
under the altar of Christ before many days. Therefore, my
beloved wife in the Lord, though the world counts us liars, and
separates us bodily, yet the merciful Father will soon bring us
together again under His altar, together with our brother; for
I do not doubt it, but am firmly trusting in Him; for I have
commended us three into His hands, to do His divine will with
us, whereby His name may be most praised and thanked, to the
salvation of our souls,and to the consolation and strengthening
of, all those that fear the Lord, and serve and love His name;
this He will also do, I doubt not; for He does not forsake His
own who trust in Him; hence I go with a glad heart, to offer up
my sacrifice to the praise of the Lord. If I could yet have
come to you, I would have done so; but Joachim would not have
it. But Christ will soon bring us together again under His
altar; this men will not be able to prevent. Herewith I bid you
adieu, till we meet under the altar. I commend you to the Lord.
Big Henry salutes you much in the Lord. See, my dear wife in
the Lord, the hour is now come that we must part; and thus I go
before, with great joy and gladness, to my and your heavenly
Father (John 20:17), and I most humbly entreat you, not to
grieve on this account, but to rejoice with me. Rom. 12:15.
However, I am sad in one respect, because I leave you among
these wolves; but I have commended you and the fruit to the
Lord, and know assuredly, that He will preserve you unto the
end, and herein I rest content. Be valiant in the Lord.</p>

<h2>HOW LIJSKEN, JEROME'S WIFE, VALIANTLY<br />
FOUGHT, AND CONFESSED THE GROUND OF HER<br />
FAITH BEFORE ALL THE PEOPLE, REMAINING<br />
STEADFAST UNTO THE END; AND HOW THEY<br />
BY NIGHT PUT HER INTO A BAG, AND<br />
THREW HER INTO THE SCHELDT, SHE<br />
THUS SEALING HER FAITH WITH HER<br />
DEATH</h2> 

<p>Lijsken, our sister, who was in bonds for a long time,
fulfilled the time of her sojourning, continuing most perfectly
and steadfastly in the Word of the Lord unto the end, the Lord
be praised forever, and confessed her faith very frankly and
unfeignedly, in the court, before the authorities and the
common people. In the first place, they questioned her
concerning baptism, to which she replied, "I know but one
baptism, which Christ and His saints practiced and left
us.", "What do you think of infant baptism?" asked the
bailiff?</p>

<p>Lijsken answered, "That it is nothing but infant baptism, and
a human institution."</p>

<p>The lords then arose and put their heads together. In the
meantime Lijsken clearly confessed and explained the ground of
her faith to the people. Thereupon they passed sentence- upon
her. Lijsken thus addressed herself to the judges, "You are judges now, but the time will come when you shall
wish that you had been shepherds,* for there is a Judge and
Lord over us all, who will judge you in due time; 'but we
wrestle not against flesh and blood, but against
principalities, against powers, against the rulers of the
darkness of this world."' Wisd. 5; Ps. 7:11; Eph. 6:1.2. The
lords therefore said, "Take her out of the court."</p>

<br /><cite>*In Dutch"Schaepheaderen," signifying the most
menial occupation.-Trans.</cite> 

</div><div id="523"> 

<p>The people then ran together in great crowds to see her.
Lijsken boldly said to them, "Be it known to you, that I do
not:suffer for .theft, murder, or any other evil deed, but
solely for the incorruptible Word of God." Thereupon they came
to the Bargkerk,* when she said, "O thou den of thieves (Matthew
21:13), how many a soul is murdered in thee!" As she was thus
going along between the servants, though not led by them, the
latter said [to the people], "Arise, make room." Then Li j sken
said, "They do not hinder me; they may look on me, and take an
example from me, all who love the word of the Lord." Phil.
3:17:</p>

<p>Speaking on, she went back into prison. The common people
were greatly agitated, but the friends rejoiced. Hence, in the
afternoon, some of our friends went to the prison to visit her,
much other people also coming. The friends. talked a little
with her, and said, "It is well that you suffer only for well
doing, and not: for any evil deed." I Pet. 2:20. But she had to
avoid them, on account of the other people that were in the
prison. She spoke boldly and valiantly to the people, and sang
a beautiful hymn, so that the people were greatly astonished.
Two monks came, to torment her yet, and the three were locked
together in a room. Lijsken utterly refused to listen to them.
Once the door of the room was opened, much people standing
before it, and Lijsken came and stood in the door, and said to
the monks, "Go away, until you are sent for.; for I will not
listen to you; if I had been content with your leaven, I should
not have come to this, " The three were again locked into the
room, and the erring spirits or stars (I John 4:1; Jude 13)
made another attempt with their false and deadly poison; but,
God be praised, Lijsken was undaunted and of good cheer, and
commenced singing a hymn in the presence of the monks. One
of the friends present said, "Sister; fight valiantly, "
When they [the monks], heard this, they were very angry, and
said, "There is another of her people, who encourages her, whom
it were <i>better to</i> burn than her. Thus they went away in
a rage; for their voice was strange, and they were not heard
there." John 10:5.</p>

<p>Lijsken was then shut up alone in the room, which fronted
the street, where she used to sit; and no one could get to her,
save he that had the keys. When the monks came out into the
street, to go away, some friends who were there asked them"Will
she not be converted?" The monks replied"No; for there was one
of her people there, whom she preferred to hear." Towards
evening, the Lord granted, that one of the friends came to the
place where Lijsken sat, and conversed with her a long time, so
that the people in the street began to hear it, and all looked
up to the place where the friend was, so that some who were
with him became uneasy, and told him to go away; but he
replied, "I must first bid her adieu." He then said, "Arise,</p>

<br /><cite>*Name of a church.</cite> 

<p>sister, show yourself, and look out at the window." She
immediately did so, and as she looked out upon the people
standing in the street, some friends who were among the crowd,
also called out, saying;"Dear sister, fight valiantly; for the
crown of life is set before you." She then said to the
people, "Drunkards, whoremongers, adulterers, all these are
tolerated; they indeed read and speak of the Scriptures; but
they that live and walk according to the will of God, are
troubled, .oppressed, persecuted and put to death." II Tim.
3:12; John 16:2. And forthwith she began to sing, "Behold, what
poor sheep we are," etc. Rom. 8:36. Before the hymn was
finished, the lords came with the servants into the prison.
Some friends said, "Just finish it, Lijsken." But before she
could finish the hymn, they drew her away from the window, and
evening approaching, she was seen no more. Saturday morning we
rose early, some before daylight, others at day break, to see
the marriage which we thought should come off. But the crafty
murderers had anticipated us; .we had. slept too long; for they
had perpetrated their murderous work between three and four
o'clock. They took the lamb to the Scheldt, thrust her into a
bag, and drowned her, before the people arrived, so that but
few witnessed it. There were some, however, who saw that she
went boldly unto death, and valiantly said, "Father, into Thy
hands I commend my spirit." Thus she was delivered up, and
departed, to the praise of the Lord.; so that through the grace
of God it moved much .people. When the people arrived, and
learned that she was dead already, it caused a great commotion
among them, and as much sorrow as though she had been publicly
executed; for they said, "Thieves and murderers are brought
publicly before all men." Thus their perfidy became the more
widely known. Some plain people asked, "Why must this people die? for many give a good testimony of
them." Some friends who were there openly said to the
people, "The reason is, that they obey the commands of God more
than that of the Emperor, or of men, because they have
sincerely turned to the Lord their God; from lies to the truth,
from darkness to light, from unrighteousness to righteousness,
from unbelief to the true faith; have thus amended their life,
and, after becoming true believers, been baptized according to
the command of Christ, and the practice of His apostles." They
moreover showed to the people from the Word of God, that the
papists are those of whom the apostle Paul prophesied; that is,
the seducing spirits., who teach the doctrines of devils; and
also, that the righteous had to suffer from the beginning, from
the time of Abel until now, even as Christ also had to suffer,
and thus enter into the glory of His Father, leaving us an
example, that we should follow His steps;"for all that will
live godly in Christ Jesus shall suffer persecution." I Timothy
4:1; Luke 24:26; I Pet. 2:21; II Tim. 3:12.</p><br />

 
<h1>PIETER BRUYNEN, JAN PLEUNIS, AND JAN THE OLD CLOTHES BUYER, AND ANOTHER BROTHER, ALL PUT TO DEATH, ON THE 2nd OF OCTOBER, A. D: 1551, AT ANTWERP</h1>

</div><div id="524"> <br />

<p><i>A letter from Pieter Bruynen van Weert, which. he</i><br />
<i>wrote in prison at Antwerp, where he and four</i><br />
<i>others were put to death for the Word of</i><br />
<i>the Lord, on the 2nd of October,</i><br />
<i>A. D. 1551</i></p>

<p>Grace to you, and peace, from God our Father and the Lord
Jesus Christ. Blessed be the God of mercies, who has with His
divine Word begotten us again unto a lively hope, reserved in
heaven for us, who by the power of God are preserved in the
faith, and tried for the kingdom of God, wherefore we suffer,
for which thanks be to the Lord, because He has chosen us
thereto, and made us meet to be partakers of the inheritance of
the saints in light. Rom. 1:7; Jas. 1:18; Col. 1:12. Therefore,
dear brethren, be valiant and fearless, and walk with a firm
and unchanging faith before God and His church, and firmly
resolve, not to depart from the Lord, nor to separate from His
love, on account of any distress or tribulation; and He can
give you assistance and comfort, when you are forsaken, being
deprived of all human help and consolation; for He comes to the
help of him that forsakes and denies himself, since He dwells
and will dwell alone in the hearts of men, and will not have it
that we should serve any one but Him. Matt. 4:10. Thus, be
established and built up in Him, and let love increase among
you, whereby one sustains the other, and each joyfully
endeavors to be the chiefest in virtue. Pay no regard to the
walk of- the slothful and heedless, to follow their example,
namely those who are called Christians in ease of life (Matt.
11:8), adornment of clothing, or external appearance, but
consider those whose life and confession of faith conform to
the doctrine of Christ; so that you may go neither too high nor
too low, neither too broad nor too long. Eph. 3:18. For many go
astray by looking to one another; in consequence of which they
grow cold.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear brethren, if you be risen with Christ, seek
those things which are above, that your mind may be directed
towards the incorruptible, and let your hope be set on the
things which are not seen, and be patient herein; for there
must be patience, if we would receive the promise. II Cor.
4:18; Heb. 10:36. Stablish your hearts; for the coming of the
Lord draweth nigh. Jas. 5:8. Put off the old man, and put on
the new man (Col. 3:9, 10); deny ungodliness and worldly lusts,
and be transformed by the renewing of your minds. If you would
be partakers of the -resurrection of Christ, know, that you
must first have crucified the old man, that the body of sin-may
be destroyed. Rom. 6:6. And do not become weary in welldoing,
since your labor shall not be in vain; for you are made
partakers of Christ, if you hold thebeginning of your
confidence steadfast unto . the end. I Cor. 15:58; Heb. 3:14.
Be therefore not shaken by anything, neither be afraid of the
sons of men, who pass away as grass; for they can do you
nothing without God's permission. But fear God for this is
perfect wisdom. Humble yourselves before Him; for the great
Glory is honored by the lowly. Count yourselves always with the
humble, and you shall be great in the eyes of God. Do not think
yourselves to know something, or to be something, lest you
deceive yourselves. Always forsake yourselves, and regard not
those who may inflict evil or suffering upon you, though you be
wronged; for this is thankworthy, if a man of conscience toward
God endure grief, suffering wrongfully. Matt. 5:39; I Pet.
2:19. Hence, be, patient in your tribulation, and be partakers
of the sufferings of Christ, .that you may inherit the promise;
for the reproach suffered here is brief when compared with the
eternal joy. Rom. 12:12;. I Peter 5:1. And this light
affliction, which is but for a moment, worketh afar more
exceeding and eternal weight of glory; for though our life is
poor, yet we shall be rewarded with much wealth. And though
death reigns over us now, an east wind shall come from the
Lord, and dry up His torments. For it is sown in dishonor, it
is raised in power; it is sown a natural body, it is raised a
spiritual body. I Cor. 15:43, 44. Hence, the house of this
tabernacle must be dissolved, if we would obtain the building
prepared us by God. We need therefore not fear them that kill
the body, since they cannot harm the soul; for the greatest of
which they deprive us, is also that for which God will give us
the greatest reward; and after that they have -no more that
they can do to us. Matt. 10:28. Wherefore, gird up the loins of
your mind, be sober, watch in prayer, always giving thanks unto
God the Father, through our Lord Jesus. Christ, .for His
abundant grace, and that He has made- known unto us His will,
manifested the savor of His knowledge, and given us the most
glorious and precious 'promises, who were sometime estranged in
our minds by wicked works, and alienated from the life of God,
of which we had' no hope in the promises. But after that the
kindness of God appeared .toward us, not by works of
righteousness which we have done, but according to His mercy He
saved us, by the washing of regeneration, and renewing of the
Holy Ghost, in whom we are sealed until the time of redemption,
who is the earnest of the future inheritance, and who assures
us, and bears witness with our spirit, that we are .the
children. of God, and teaches us all things, and who of God is
made unto us wisdom, and righteousness, sanctification, and
redemption. To God the Father, who only hath immortality, and
to whom' alone belong power and might, praise and glory, be
honor and thanks, through Christ our Lord, for His unspeakable
grace, now and forever. I Pet. 1:13; Eph. 1:9; JI Cor.</p>

</div><div id="525"> 

<p>2:14; Eph. 4:18; Tit. 3:4; Eph. 1:13, 14; Rom. 8:16; I Cor.
1:30; I Tim. 6:16; Rev. 4:11.</p>

<p>As regards our present condition, the Lord be praised for
it, whom we cannot thank enough for the joy, that He has
counted us worthy to suffer for His name, and for the joy given
us by Him, which we have in our imprisonment; for He is
faithful, so that with the temptation He also provides for His
own a way of escape, and He does not suffer His own, who trust
in Him, to be confounded. The grace of the Lord be with you.
Greet one another with a holy kiss; Jan, Pleun, and I, also
greet you much. Herewith I commend you to God, and to the Word
of His grace. Written by me, Peter Van Weert, while in prison
with two others.</p>

<p class="c8">Peter's second letter, in which he takes
leave</p>

<p>Herewith we commend you all, dear brethren, to the Lord,
wishing that you may finish your course to the praise of the
Lord, so that you may obtain the crown, and remain steadfast
unto the end, in order that you may obtain salvation; for no
one obtains the prize, except he strive valiantly. I Cor. 9:24;
II Tim. 2:5. Run, therefore, that you may obtain the prize;
fight as soldiers of the Lord; firmly resolve to take no
thought how or what you shall speak when you shall be brought
before the magistrate, for God the Lord suffers not His own who
trust in Him to be confounded. Matthew 10:19. Though they are
arraigned as malefactors, yet He does not forsake His own; for
though weeping come in the evening, joy shall return in the
morning. Ps. 30:5. And though He, to chasten us, be angry for a
moment, yet through His mercy He keeps us alive. Heb. 12:8;
Isa. 54:8. Hence, we are not forsaken by Him, though we have
more adversity than the world.</p>

<p>My brethren, the servant is not greater than his Lord or
Master. Remember, that though Christ was rich, yet for our
sakes He became poor, and though He was exalted, yet for our
sakes He suffered and accepted reproach, that we through His
poverty might be made rich, and through His reproach become
heirs of His promises. II Cor. 8:9. Let us go forth therefore
unto Him without the camp, and help bear His reproach. Heb.
13:13. Let us long for the future possessions. And be not in
darkness, nor overcharged with eating or drinking; neither
entangle yourselves with the cares of this life; walk as
children of the light; be always ready like those who
constantly wait for their lord; for He will come as a thief in
the night. Luke 21:34; 12:36; Rev. 3:3. Make yourselves ready,
take the staff into the hand, gird up your loins, and journey
to the promised land; you shall possess it, if you do not fall
into unbelief. It is pleasant and beautiful; we have seen it
from afar, for which we thank and praise the Lord.</p>

<p>On this account, we desire of you, lovers of the truth, that
you help us thank the Lord. For I once made a vow to the Lord,
that I would live to Him all the days of my life (Luke 1:75),
which He hashelped me fulfill, for which I praise Him, and have
often earnestly done so, with outstretched arms. The reason I
write this, is, that you may not forget to thank and praise the
Lard, for He is greater than all our lives; for you cannot so
magnify Him that He is not still more wonderful. Sir. 43:30.
Continue in His words, and keep His commandments. Love one
another sincerely. I Pet. 1:22. We also praise Him for His
faithfulness according to His promises, which He shows in us,
in that we cannot sufficiently describe the joy He gives us;
for in the beginning of our confinement, when we were
imprisoned, we were joyful and fearless, likewise before the
lords, and were filled with joy also afterward an the bridge
and in our prison. Moreover, we hope that God will give us
boldness unto the end.</p>

<p>Hence, our dear brethren, be not terrified, if they inflict
more than one death upon us, since much can be done in a
quarter of 'an hour, yet it is as nothing to the pain of hell,
and not worthy to be compared to the future joy. For after we
have suffered this distress, and pass through this strait, we
expect joy and amplitude; then shall all our tears be wiped
away, and we shall weep and cry no more, but pass from one joy
to another. O my brethren, strive to enter into His joy. Lead
henceforth a Christian life and see that the Gospel be not evil
spoken of on your account. Rom. 14:16. Be always meek, and have
an unspotted conscience, and whatsoever you take in hand
remember the end, that you will not do amiss. Matt. 11:29; Sir.
7:36. And forget not the ardency of the spiritual reformation
in the beginning of the Christian life, lest when you think you
are a perfect Christian, reformation of life be still
necessary. We commend you to God, and to the Word of His grace.
We, Jan, Pleun, and Peter, greet you in the Lord. Pray the Lard
for us, that we may finish our course to His praise. We also
pray for you.</p>

<h2>CONFESSION OR DEFENSE OF FAITH, OF JAN, THE<br />
OLD CLOTHES BUYER, WHEN HE LAY IN<br />
PRISON AT ANTWERP, A. D. <i>1551</i></h2> 

<p><i>Question.</i> "What do you think of infant baptism?"</p>

<p><i>Answer."I</i> do not think it to be anything but a human
institution."</p>

<p><i>Ques."By</i> what then will you prove or maintain your
baptism?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "Mark 16."</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "What are your views concerning the
sacraments?"</p>

<p><i>Ans."I</i> have nothing to say of the sacraments of men,
but the Supper, as Christ held it with His apostles, I approve
and esteem; for I think there are many who do not know what
sacrament means."</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "What do you think of the Roman church?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "Nothing, but I esteem the Christian church,
which is the church of Christ."</p>

</div><div id="526"> 

<p><i>Ques.</i> "What do you hold concerning the host which the
priest holds in his hand? do you not believe that our Lord is
in it with flesh and blood?"</p>

<p><i>Ans."No;</i> for it is written, Acts 1, that He shall
come again in like manner as He ascended into heaven."</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "What do you think of the pope?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "That he is the antichrist." I Thess. 2:3.</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "What do you think of the mass, ceremonies, and
confession observed in the church?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "Nothing, since the tree from which they spring,
is good for nothing."</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "Where were you baptized?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "My lords, if you know it, why do you yet ask
me?"</p>

<p>The bailiff then said, "I adjure you by your baptism, that
you tell us where you were baptized." Matt. 26:63.</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "My baptism I ,hold to be good and right; but
your adjuration I do not regard."</p>

<p>They then read to me the names and surnames of all that had
been baptized with me and said, "Assuerus has confessed it to
us." I then said, "It is true."</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "Who baptized you?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "It does not behoove me to tell."</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "We shall make you tell."</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "My flesh is before you; do with it as you
please."</p>

<h2>WILLEM THE CABINETMAKER, BEHEADED IN<br />
CLEVES; WINDEL RAVENS ALSO PUT TO<br />
DEATH THERE, A. D. <i>1551</i></h2> 

<p><i>(Copied from an old Writing*)</i></p>

<p>Willem, the cabinetmaker, resided in Weesz, a village
belonging to the country of Cleves; he was a very peaceable and
pious man, who on account of the Christian faith had to leave
his native country, and when he would not conform to the world,
he was brought prisoner from Weesz to Cleves, and having there
been imprisoned for about a year, finally beheaded. He wrote
several letters from prison.</p>

<p>When Willem the cabinetmaker was to be condemned by the
judges at Cleves, Claes Meselaer, one of them, would not sit in
the court to condemn him, but pretended sickness and went to
bed. The Burgomaster, therefore, with the six judges, came to
his bedside, to obtain his assent to the sentence. He said he
did not want to condemn so pious a man. Thereupon the
Burgomaster said, "By this you will incur the great displeasure
of our gracious Prince and lord." Claes replied, "I will rather
incur the displeasure of Duke William, than of the Most
High.""Then I will take it upon myself," said the Burgomaster,
who was afterward visited by the avenging hand of the Lord, so
that he was tormented by lice, and lost his speech for a time,
and thus died in great misery. But Claes Meselaer</p>

<br /><cite>*This copy was sent to us by some one from the
country of Cleves, as a very old relic.</cite> 

<p>resigned his office of judge, and died a brother in the
church. Besides him, another brother, named Windel Rauens, was
put to death at Cleves; who like the aforesaid, exchanged his
life for death, after he had commended his soul into the hands
of God.</p>

<h2>MARIA OF MONJOU, A. D. <i>1552</i></h2> 

<p>As it is known and manifest according to the testimony of
the divine Scriptures, that all who have been righteous, and
lived godly in Christ Jesus, have had to suffer, from the
beginning of the world, so this Maria, as a pious, God-fearing
woman, also partook of said suffering. For as she, according to
the requirement of the Scriptures, had been baptized upon the
true faith, as a member of the body of Christ, and had
conducted herself for a time in an edifying manner among the
brethren and all men, the envy of the dragon manifested itself,
and the bailiff of Monjou caused her to be brought and
imprisoned at Monjou, where she remained in confinement over a
year. And though she had to suffer much, yet she bore it with
joy. Her constant admonition to all the pious was, that they
should walk in love, and hold fast the covenant of Jesus
Christ. Eph. <i>5:2.</i> She was herself constantly endeavoring
to present her body a living sacrifice, holy, acceptable unto
God, and that she might be built up a spiritual house well
adorned inwardly with the Word of.God. Rom. <i>12:1; I</i> Pet.
<i>2:5.</i></p>

<p>The authorities tormented her for three days in succession,
but could not induce her to forsake her faith, since she would
adhere to Christ; for according to the Scriptures, no one is
ever confounded, who fears God from the heart. The bailiff
entreated her to go to church and he would release her, and
give her her board for a whole year; but she would not consent,
but desired to adhere to Christ, and to give her life for His
sake; whereupon she was condemned to be drowned.</p>

<p>On her way to the water, she sang with a joyful heart,
because this day had come, and she had lived to see this hour;
and thus she proceeded, like a sheep is led to the slaughter,
in the hands of Pilate, even as they did with Christ, as the
Scripture testifies, "They shall kill you, and think that they
do God service." John 16:2.</p>

<p>On the way, Maria said, "I have been the bride of a man; but
today I hope to be the bride of Christ, and to inherit His
kingdom with Him." As they approached the water, one of the
hypocrites said, "O Maria, repent, or it will not go well with
you." At the water, they delayed with her over two hours,
thinking that they could induce her to apostatize, forsake the
truth, and follow them. Thereupon Maria said, "I adhere to my
God; proceed with what you have come here for; the wheat is in
the straw; it must be threshed, so the Word of God has begun,
and must be finished." With this, she undressed, willingly
surrendered herself, and</p>

</div><div id="527"> 

<p>said, "O heavenly Father, into Thy hands I commend my
spirit," and was thus drowned, and died, confessing the name of
God, and sealing it with her death to the consolation of all
believers.</p>

<h2>BARBEL PUT TO DEATH A. D. 1552</h2> 

<p>About this time, also a pious, God-fearing woman, named
Barbel, was drowned, at Guelich, because she had forsaken
popery and idolatry, and become obedient to the holy Gospel. I
Cor. 10:14.</p>

<h2>WILLEM OF BIERCK, CHRISTOFFEL FROM GEISTENS,<br />
CHRISTIAN FROM EUKERAET, AND TIELLE<br />
MAN FROM NUNKERKEN, A. D. 1552</h2> 

<p>The four brethren, Willem of Bierck, Christoffel from the
Geistens, Christian from Eukeraet, and Tielleman from
Nunkerken, were executed together on the same day, with the
sword, at Blankenburg; they willingly suffered death for the
testimony of Jesus, and with their blood testified to their
faith.</p>

<h2>MARIKEN AND ANNEKEN, A. D. 1552</h2> 

<p>Those who hold only to God and His holy Word, and seek to
fulfill the latter, are not only persecuted but also imprisoned
and put to death, as was very evident, in the year 1552, at
Leyden, in the case of two women, named Mariken and Anneken,
who were apprehended and brought into a house, where they were
asked by the bailiff, what views they held with regard to the
Roman church. They replied that for the most part it was
nothing but the doctrine of devils. He further questioned them
respecting the sacrament of the priests, whether Christ was not
bodily in it. They said, "It might be a hidden devil; for God
does not suffer Himself to be locked up in silver or golden
caskets." They were then led to prison, and passing the church
they said, "O den of murderers and choir of devils!""Why do you
speak such presumptuous words?" said the bailiff's
servant."Because so many a poor soul is murdered in it," they
replied. Being kept imprisoned for a time, and examined, they
boldly confessed their faith and firmly adhered to it, in
consequence of which they were sentenced to death. In the
sentence of the one it was charged that she had denied infant
baptism, rejected the sacrament, and, contrary to the decree of
the Emperor, had attended unlawful assemblies, and that she
should therefore be put to death as a heretic. The other, not
having been baptized, would have been set at liberty, had she
been willing to apostatize from her faith, which she was
greatly importuned to do; but she remained immovable, and as
she had said, "Your bread god is eaten by spiders and worms; I
will not be a partaker of it," and remained steadfast also in
other articles, she was likewise sentenced to death. Thus these
two had to lose their lives for the truth, to satisfy the
bloodthirsty judges, who have feet that are swift in running to
mischief, and hands to shed innocent blood. Prov. 6:18, 17.</p>

<h2>WILLIAM VAN ROBAEYS, A. D. 1552</h2> 

<p>In this same year, a brother named William van Robaeys, was
persecuted, apprehended, examined, tortured and finally put to
death, at Komen, in Flanders, for righteousness for the truth,
and for following Christ.</p>

 
<h1>HENDRICK DIRKS, DIRK JANS, AND ADRIAN CORNELISS, A. D. 1552</h1>

<p>In the same year, three brethren, named Hendrick Dirks, Dirk
Jans, and Adrian Corneliss, were apprehended at Leyden, and
examined in regard to their faith; but when they boldly
confessed it, and would in no wise depart from it, they were
also sentenced to death. Hendrick Dirks, advancing joyfully,
said, "Blessed are they that weep now; for they shall laugh, and
be rewarded with shining,robes; yea, with an eternal crown, if
they strive steadfastly. This is the Sabbath of the Lord, which
I have long desired; not that I am worthy to suffer for His
name, but He has made me worthy; and thus we suffer not for
theft or murder, but for the pure word of God." Luke 6:21;
Matt. 13:43; II Tim. 4:8; Matt. 24:13; Isa. 58: 13; Acts 5:41;
I Peter 4:15.</p>

<p>Dirk Jans said, "Though all men despise us, God does
therefore not despise us. Remember, lords, that on high there
is a judge over all, and believe that He will once judge and
pass sentence. This suffering," said he,"is not so great;
Christ had to suffer much more, when He shed His blood for us.
He will strengthen us in what we suffer for His name; for we
suffer not for schism or anything evil; for there is no other
true faith to be found than that which we maintain. Therefore,
O God, have compassion upon me, and receive me into Thine
arms." .Ps. 7:11; Matt. 25:31; Isa. 53; Matt. 26:28.</p>

<p>Adrian Corneliss intrepidly said, "Christ has gone this way
before us; and His beloved apostles likewise, and we His
servants are not above our Lord." Luke 24:26; Acts 14:22.</p>

<p>They then fell upon their knees, earnestly prayed to God
(Acts 20:36), and rising, said, "They think by killing us to
exterminate the God-fearing; but for one whom they kill, a
hundred others shall arise. Hence, fear not them that kill the
body; but fear him who is able to cast both soul and body into
everlasting torment." Matt. 10:28. Standing on the bench, they
exclaimed, "Fear not that which is temporal, but fear that which
will last forever; for eternity is so long." With this, they
commended their souls into the hands of God, and offered up
their burnt sacrifice. They now rest under the altar, and wait
to be clothed in shining robes, and to receive the new wine in
the throne of heaven. Matthew 26:29.</p>

</div><div id="528"> 

<h2>SEVERAL LETTERS WRITTEN IN PRISON, BY ADRIAN<br />
CORNELISS, INCLUDING A PRAYER, AN ADMONITION, AND A CONFESSION OF ADRIAN CORNELISS, GLAZIER, WHO WAS IMPRISONED AT<br />
LEYDEN, AND ALSO PUT TO DEATH THERE<br />
FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS, IN THE<br />
YEAR OF OUR LORD, <i>1552</i><br />
<i>His prayer to God</i></h2> 

<p>O Lord of heaven and earth, who hast made all things out of
nothing, who hast given me members after the image of Thy Son,
I hope to offer them up now for Thy holy name; for Thou art the
Lord, before whom every knee must bow, both in heaven and upon
earth; hear my prayer, and let my incense be acceptable before
Thee. Take not Thy grace from me, a polluted man of unclean
lips; purify my mouth, that Thy name may be praised thereby.
Incline Thine ear to me, and Thou shalt see how they fall upon
me; but it is better for me to fall into the hands of men, than
to sin in Thy sight; for Thine eyes are as a flame of fire, and
Thy Word as a sharp, two-edged sword, piercing even to the
dividing asunder of soul and spirit, and of the joints and
marrow, and Thou art a discerner of the thoughts and intents of
the heart, and there is nothing hid before Thine eyes.
Therefore I exclaim with David, Thy dear prophet, that it is
better to fall into the hands of men, than into Thy wrath.
Matt. <i>11:25; Gen</i>. <i>1:27; R</i>om: 12:1; Phil. 2:10;
Isa., <i>6:5; Susanna 23; Rev</i>. 1:14; Heb. <i>4:12,
13.</i></p>

<p>O Lord, lead me into the land of Haran, in which I have not
so much inheritance as to set my foot on, namely, the promised
land, which I pray Thou wilt give me, out of grace and not for
my own works or merits. Acts 7:4, <i>5.</i> Deliver me with Lot
from this generation. Preserve me, Lord, from the fierce teeth
of the lions, which are many, yea, from the ferocious evening
wolves, that let nothing remain till the morning, whose feet
make haste to shed innocent blood. Zeph. <i>3:3; P</i>rov.
1</p>

<p><i>16. O</i> Ldrd, preserve me with Shadrach, Meshach, and
Abednego, that the fire of blasphemy which proceeds out of
their mouth, may not harm me. Dan. <i>3:27. O</i> Lord, let my
prayer be heard with that of Tobit and Sarah; hear my prayer
with that of Elijah, and receive me as a burnt offering,
living, holy and acceptable unto Thee, that the prophets of
Jezebel may be confounded, and seduce Thy people no longer.
Tobit <i>3:1, 11; I</i> Kings <i>18:36;</i> 19:4. Lord,
preserve me,with Joseph from the wicked woman, that I may
rather suffer myself to be deprived of my garment, namely, my
first body; for we read, "He which is joined to a harlot is one
body with her." Genesis <i>39:7; I</i> Cor. <i>6:16.</i>
Preserve me, Lord; for I call heaven and earth to witness, that
I - die innocently; for whosoever seeks to save his life, shall
lose it; and whosoever loses his life for Thy sake, Lord, and
the Gospel's, shall preserve it. I Macc. <i>2:37;</i> Matt.
<i>16:25.</i> Hence, I cry with old Eleazer, "I will rather
diegloriously than live stained with abomination, ".,II Macc.
<i>6:19.</i></p>

<p>O Lord, behold, the burning wrath of a great multitude is
kindled over us, and they shall take away certain of us, and
feed the idle with things offered unto idols; but Thou, Lord,
preservest me, Thou givest Thy servant bread in time of need,
and water when he is thirsty, and in 'the ,day of tribulation
Thou forgivest sins. II Esd. <i>16:68;</i> Sir. 2:11. And Thou
has said to Thy dear prophet, that though a mother forget her
child to which she herself has, given birth, yet wilt Thou not
forget us; for it is Thy Word, Lord. Isa. 49:15. Thou hast
spoken through Thydear apostle Paul, "Come out from this wicked
generation, and touch not the unclean thing. Then Thou wilt
deliver us, and be our Father, and we shall be Thy sons and
daughters." II Cor. <i>6:17, 18.</i> We now also go forth
without the camp, and will help bear Thy reproach. Heb.
<i>13:13.</i> Lord, teach us to pray according to Thy will,
that we may pray in spirit and in truth, that we may truly call
Thee Father; for a son must honor his father, and a servant his
master. Mal. <i>1:6.</i> Grant us therefore to be partakers of
the Word which declares, "These are they who have not loved
their life, but have delivered it into death; for those that
are slain by men, have a better hope to expect from God,
namely, that they shall be raised again; for Thou provest Thy
chosen; Thou triest them as gold in the furnace, and Thou
receivest them as an offering of burnt sacrifice." Ps.
<i>66:10.</i> Lord, now let Thy servant depart in peace.. Holy
Father, sanctify Thy Son, that I may be found unblamable at Thy
appearing. Keep me, holy Father for Thy holy name's sake. Amen.
Luke <i>2:29;</i> John <i>17:11.</i></p>

<h2>An admonition of Adrian Corneliss, to the</h2> 

<h2>friends</h2> 

<p>The rich .grace and peace of God our heavenly Father, who
has purified us by the washing of regeneration, and the
renewing of the Holy Ghost, has enlightened our hearts, and
opened-the eyes of our understanding through the hope of the
Gospel, and warned us, that denying ungodliness and worldly
lusts; we should live soberly, righteously, and godly, in this
present world, and keep ourselves unspotted from this world,
before God the Father, who will have all men to be saved, and
to come unto the knowledge 'of the truth, that at the time of
revelation we may have hope and consolation, and be counted
among the number of the elect. The Father and His blessed Son
Jesus Christ fit you for this, now and evermore. Amen. Tit.
3:5; I I Cor. 4:6; Eph. 1:18; Tit. 2:12; Jas. 1:27; I Tim.
2:4.</p>

<p>We, fellow citizens with the saints, and of the household of
God, built upon the foundation of the apostles and prophets,
Jesus Christ Himself being the chief cornerstone, in whom all
the building fitly framed together graweth unto a holy temple
in the Lord, to the twelve tribes which are scattered</p>

</div><div id="529"> 

<p>abroad through cruel edicts and severe persecution,
greeting. Eph. 2:19-21; I Peter 2:6; James 1:1. Hence, my dear
brethren and sisters, do not become weary because you now
suffer for a season, and have to flee from one city into
another; but remember, my dear friends, that it all conduces to
your happiness, and take for an example Tobit, with his wife
and son, how he had to flee, and to be hid naked; likewise,
Matthias with his sons and those who loved him, when he
said, "Whosoever is pious and of good cheer, let him make his
testament, and follow me." Matt. 10:23; Rom. 8:28; Tobit 1:19;
I Macc. 2:27.</p>

<p>Take also Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob for examples, who
dwelled in tents, and also others; for here we have no
continuing city; they wandered about in sheepskins and
goatskins, in hunger,. want and affliction, of whom the world
was not worthy. Genesis 12. See, my dear friends, think not
that you are the only ones, or that you are forsaken by the
Lord, when some tempest assails you; but remember that we must
through much suffering take the kingdom of God. Sir. 2:10; Acts
14:22. If the above-mentioned had been mindful of the country
from whence they came out, truly, they might have had
opportunity enough to have returned; but they declare plainly
that they sought a country, a city which has foundations, whose
builder and maker is God; wherefore God was not ashamed to be
called their God. Ex. 3:6. Thus, also, my dear friends, will He
not be ashamed of us; for He says through His pious prophet
Isaiah, "Can a mother forsake her own child, to whom she herself
has given birth? Yea, she may forget it, yet will thy God not
forget thee." Isa. 49:15. Consider, therefore, how the gracious
Father has been with all the pious children of God, and how He
has preserved and upheld them under His powerful hand, as we
may clearly understand from Abraham; for when he went into a
strange country, he often had had God for his comforter. He
gave Jacob courage when he fled before his brother Esau. He fed
Hezekiah three days and three nights, who complained of the
blasphemy of Sennacherib. II Kings 19:6. He delivered the Jews
through Judith, when they were besieged by Holofernes. Judith
13:8. He delivered the three young men from the heat of the
fiery furnace, and was in the pit with Daniel, so that the
lions did not devour him. Dan. 3:2 .5; 6:22. He delivered
Israel from the bondage of Pharaoh. He delivered Rahab from the
shadow of death. Josh. 6:25. He saved Susanna through Daniel.
He delivered Peter from prison. He delivered John from the Isle
of Patmos. He comforted Paul by the vision on the way to
Damascus. He comforteth the apostles through the Comforter, the
Holy Ghost. He turned Joseph's great sorrow into great joy in
Egypt. Thus, God will also turn the sorrow of everyone of you
into great joy, even as He Himself declares, "The world shall
rejoice; but ye shall mourn and be sorrowful; but be of good
cheer, God shall turn your sorrowinto joy. A woman when she is
in travail hath sorrow, but as soon as she is delivered of the
child, she remembereth no more the anguish, for joy that a
child is born into the world. And, ye now therefore have
sorrow: but I will see you again, and your sorrow shall be
turned into joy, and your joy no man taketh from you." John
16:20-22.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear friends, be not afraid of the sons of
men, who pass away as grass."Fear not, little flock; for it is
your Father's good pleasure to give you the kingdom." Luke
12:32. Be not of raid, my dear friends, of this tyrannous
generation; fear not theln that kill the body; but I will show
you whom you shall fear: fear him who after you are dead has
power to cast into eternal fire. And, my dear friends, we have
here a little suffering of tribulation, but it is very small in
comparison with the everlasting torment or punishment.</p>

<p>John the Revelator says, "Fear God, and give glory to him."
Rev. 14:7. And the prophet Esdras says, "Behold, God himself is
the judge, fear him</p>

<p>leave off from your sins, and forget your iniquities, to
meddle no more with them forever: so shall God lead you forth,
and deliver you from all trouble. For behold, the burning wrath
of a great multitude is kindled over you, and they shall take
away certain of you, and feed you, being idle, with things
offered unto idols. And they that consent unto them shall be
had in derision and in reproach, and trodden under foot. For
there shall be in every place, and in the next cities, a great
insurrection upon those that fear the Lord. They shall be like
mad men, sparing none, but still spoiling and destroying those
that fear the Lord. For they shall waste and take away their
goods, and cast them out of their houses. Then shall they be
known who are my chosen; and they shall be tried as the gold in
the fire." Therefore, my chosen, behold, the days of trouble
are at hand, but the Lord will deliver you from the same. Be yd
not afraid, neither doubt; for God is your guide, and the Lord
will not leave you orphans; for He cares for us all, and will
preserve us as the apple of His eye. II Esd. 16:6775; Wisd.
3:6; Jno. 14:18.</p>

<p>Hence, faint not at the tribulation in which we are, but
adhere to the Lord, and the tempest will soon attack you; but,
my dear friends, remember, as the sufferings of Christ abound
in us, so our consolation also aboundeth by Christ, since eye
hath not seen, nor ear heard, neither have entered into the
heart; of man, the things which God hath prepared for them that
love Him. Eph. 3:13; Matt. 7:25; II Cor. 1:5; I Cor. 2:9. Let
everyone therefore, that has this hope in him, purify himself,
even as He is pure, and go out from this sinful generation, and
have no fellowship with the unfruitful works of darkness, but
rather reprove them. For it is a shame even to speak of those
things which are done of them in secret. But all things that
are reproved are made manifest by the light; for whatsoever
doth make manifest is light. Wherefore he saith, Awake thou
that sleepest, and arise</p>

</div><div id="530"> 

<p>from the dead, and Christ shall give thee light. I John 3:3;
Eph. 5:11-14.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear friends, if there should be yet some among
you, that are slothful or drowsy, let them wake up now, or they
will be shut out with the foolish virgins. O my dear friends,
it will not avail that some of you know the way. O my dear
friends, knowledge puffeth up, but charity edifieth; for it
avails not to know the way, but it must be walked: and though
it is' strait and narrow, and fraught with much labor, it must
nevertheless be walked. I Cor. 8:1; John 13:17; Matt. 7:14.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear friends, who have become partakers of the
heavenly calling, make good use of the time of grace, and look
not to those who proceed so lukewarmly and slothfully; but
strive to enter in at the strait gate; for many will seek to
enter in, and shall not be able. Luke 13:24. Why, my dear
friends? Because they seek to enter in by another way, which is
not commanded us. But those who enter in by Christ, since He is
the way, they are the ones that shall inherit the city, whom
the Bridegroom will make sit down at the table, and will serve
them. But, my dear friends, the lukewarm, who are neither cold
nor hot, God will begin to spew out of His mouth, who say they
are rich, and increased with goods, and know not that they are
poor, miserable, naked and blind. Hence, Solomon says, "Go to
the ants, thou, sluggard, and consider their labor; they gather
in the summer their sustenance for the winter." And Jeremiah
says, "The crane and the swallow observe the time of their
coming; but my people observe not the time." O ye ignorant, the
ox knoweth his master's crib. Ye who say, It will be fair
weather tomorrow, and it cometh to pass; O ye, who can discern
the face of heaven and earth, why can ye not discern among
yourselves that which is right? Matt. 16:3. Therefore, my dear
friends, take heed that none of you be found slothful; but let
your loins be girded, and have your staff in your hand, to eat
the passover; for we have a passover to eat, which is Christ;
Therefore let us keep the feast, not with old leaven, neither
with the leaven of malice and wickedness, but with the
unleavened bread of sincerity and truth. Ex. 12:11; I Cor.
7:8.</p>

<p>Hence, my dearly beloved friends, think it not strange, if
you are tried by the fire of tribulation, as though some
strange thing happened to you; but be partakers of Christ's
sufferings, that in the time of revelation, you may have hope
and consolation. Let none of you suffer as a thief or murderer;
yet if any man suffer as a Christian, let him not be ashamed;
but let him glorify God on this behalf. For the time is come
that judgment must begin at the house of God; and if it first
begin at us, what shall the end be of them that obey not the
Gospel of God? And if the righteous scarcely be saved, where
shall the ungodly and the sinner appear? Hence, Solomon
says, "If the righteous arerecompensed, how much more the wicked
and the sinner." I Pet. 4:12, 13, 15-18; Prov. 11:31.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear friends, take heed and flee the shadow of
this world, and seek not to escape the cross, so that you go
into other countries, to obtain great liberty. Oh, no, my dear
friends, but always submit to the cross; for the children that
are under the rod are therefore obedient, fearing lest their
Lord should come, and find them sleeping; hence, they are
always watchful, that they may not be found sleeping; for as
soon as the flesh obtains a little freedom, it takes still more
of its own accord. My dear friends, though I have written this
thus boldly, accept it nevertheless in good part; for I am not
your lord in this matter; but I write as my own flesh
testifies. Hence, my dear friends, walk in wisdom toward them
that are without; remain among the scattered flock of Israel;
for where blood is shed, gain is to be had; there put your
pounds out to usury, each according to the gift received from
God; in honor preferring one another; and endeavoring to show
yourselves tried ministers unto God. -Col. 4:5; I Pet. 1:1;
Matt. 25:15; Romans 12:10. Lay aside all malice and hypocrisy,
and, as newborn babes, desire the sincere milk of the word,
that ye may grow thereby: if so be ye have tasted that the Lord
is gracious, to whom ye have come, as unto a living stone;
hence, build yourselves up a spiritual house, a royal
priesthood, a holy nation, a peculiar people, that ye, as
obedient children, should show forth the praises of him who
hath called you. I Pet. 2:1-5, 9.</p>

<p>If any man speak, let him speak as the oracles of God;
fulfill your ministry wisely, that your treasure be not evil
spoken of; and as you were diligent in going astray from God,
so give now so much the more diligence to turn to the Lord, and
abound therein. I Pet. 4:11; Baruch 4:28; Rom. 6:19. Do good
unto all men, especially unto them who are of the household of
faith, and see that you add to your faith virtue; and to
virtue, knowledge; and to knowledge, temperance; and to
temperance, patience; and to patience, godliness; and to
godliness, brotherly kindness; and to brotherly kindness,
charity; for if these things be in you, and abound, they make
you that ye shall neither be barren nor unfruitful in the
knowledge of our Lord; but he that lacketh these things is
blind, and gropeth for the wall, and hath forgotten that he was
purged from his old sins. Gal. 6:10; II Pet. 1:5-9. Let it not
be so with you, my friends; make to yourselves friends of the
mammon of unrighteousness, and if you are partakers in the
spiritual things, share also the temporal things with one
another, and let this be done in order, and remember that it is
more blessed to give than to receive; for we read, John 6, that
some followed the Lord, to whom He said, "Ye follow me, not
because ye saw the miracles, but because ye did eat of the
loaves, and were filled." Luke 16:9; Rom. 15:27; I Cor. 14:40;
Acts 20:35; John 6:26.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear friends, labor not for the</p>

</div><div id="531"> 

<p>meat which perisheth, but for that meat which endureth unto
everlasting life; for man doth not live by bread alone, but by
every word that proceedeth out of the mouth of God; for"meats
for the belly, and the belly for meats; but God shall destroy
both it and them." Luke 6:27; Deut. 8:3; 1 Cor. 6:13.</p>

<p>Thus, my dear friends, if you live according to the Gospel,
you will be fruitful branches of the true vine Christ, comely
olive branches grafted into Christ. My dear friends, be not
moved away from the Gospel by the enemies of the cross of
Christ, who would preach the Gospel without the cross. Do not
believe them, for they are those who love your flesh, and kill
your souls, and put pillows under the arms, or under the head.
Avoid them, for such serve not the Lord Jesus Christ, but their
own belly, and by good words and, fair speeches deceive the
hearts of the simple. For we are not ignorant of the devices of
the devil; since he can transform himself into an angel of
light; what wonder is it then that his ministers assume this
appearance? Phil. 3:18; Ezek. 13:18; Rom. 16: 17,18; 11
Cor.11:14,15.</p>

<p>O my dear friends, a thief cometh not, but for to steal, and
to kill; hence, beware, lest you be deceived by them, and thus
fall from your own steadfastness. John 10:10; II Pet. 3:17.
Therefore, hold that fast which thou hast, that no man take thy
crown; and let him that standeth take heed lest he fall; for
what hast thou that thou didst not receive? for every good gift
and every perfect gift is from above, and cometh down from the
Father of lights, with whom is no variableness, neither shadow
of turning. Rev. 3:11; I Cor. 10:12; 4:7; James 1:17.</p>

<p>Therefore, exhort one another daily, my dear friends, the
more so, as the day of Christ is at hand, and while it is
called today. Heb. 3:13. And see that you care for one another;
and, my dear friends, when you assemble together, make not many
inquiries concerning others, or as to where each particular one
lives; in such things be ignorant, and in malice be children;
but in understanding be old and hoary, and keep the doors of
-thy mouth from her that lieth in thy bosom. I Cor. 14:20;
Micah 7:5. My dear friends, if you have understanding, answer
your neighbor; if not, lay your hand upon your mouth, lest you
be caught in an unseemly word, and put to shame. Sir. 5:12. Let
no corrupt communication proceed out of your mouth, but that
which is good to the use of edifying, and may minister grace
unto the hearers. And grieve not the Holy Spirit of God,
whereby ye are sealed unto the day of redemption. Eph. 4:29,
30.</p>

<p>My dear friends, herewith I hope to take leave. Do not take
it amiss that I have written you a little; I hope it will tend
to edification; I have done my diligence with the little gift
the Lord has given me.</p>

<p>By me; Adrian Corneliss, glazier, your unworthy brother, who
am not meet to be called a brother. I Cor. 15:9. Written in my
imprisonment, sittingin the stocks, with two fellow companions,
and one who is separately confined, and two sisters that are
below us. We wait daily for the redemption of our body; and our
pilgrimage, I trust, is half finished. I hope that we shall
soon- have completed the rest.</p>

<p>We commend you to the Lord, dear brethren. Remember the
prisoners; we remember you in our prayers. Heb. 13:3. Salute
all lovers of the only salvation by name; the times are too
perilous now, to mention them; hence we must govern ourselves
accordingly.</p>

<p>Let me inform you, how it went with us in our last time.
When we were to be offered up on Monday, a priest came to us on
Sunday, who talked to us, and said, "You have to die."</p>

<p><i>Answer.</i> "Thus did also the Jews, who said</p>

<p>'We have a law, and by our law you must die.' So must we
also, as the decree of the Emperor shows." But we asked the
priest, whether their things were right.</p>

<p>He replied, "Not all; for we have also abuses in our
church."</p>

<p>We then said, "A little leaven leaveneth the whole lump." I
Cor. 5:6.</p>

<p>He replied, "It has to be leavened."</p>

<p>By this we may perceive that their things are not good. But
beware of such; for they are not sent from God. Jer..14:15.
Salute all lovers of the divine word.</p>

<h2>Confession of Adrian Corneliss before the
magistrate and the priests, together with an account of the
manner of his apprehension</h2> 

<p>My dearly beloved brethren and sisters, to the twelve tribes
which are scattered throughout Pontus, Galatia, Cappadocia,
Asia, and Bithynia, with all that call on the Lord out of a
pure heart, in their and in our places, greeting. Jas. 1:1; I
Pet. 1:1; I Cor. 1:2; II Tim. 2:22. I must yet write to you a
little, hoping herewith to take my leave. Let me tell you how
it went in my imprisonment. I had come to Leyden, and there
conversing with a brother, we wondered how it came that they
kept our friends confined so long. We therefore agreed that I
should go and see Jan of Delft, the Bailiff's servant, and ask
him, how it stood with the prisoners, and whether they would
not soon be offered up. He replied, "I hear nothing at ail
concerning it." I then said, "This long imprisonment gives you
much trouble."</p>

<p><i>Jan.</i> "I would be well satisfied to see it come to an
end soon."</p>

<p><i>Adrian.</i> "You can hardly get away any more."</p>

<p><i>Jan.</i> "Yes, that is so."</p>

<p><i>Adrian."You</i> ought to have some rest."</p>

<p><i>Jan.</i> "It would soon be time."</p>

<p><i>Adrian.</i> "Jan Jans, I should like to have a little
conversation with you about certain things."</p>

<p><i>Jan."I</i> have something to do yet; I shall speak</p>

<p>with you; just wait here a little while for me."</p>

<p>I waited a little, and he returned, even before he had
attended to the prisoners or brought them their</p>

</div><div id="532"> 

<p>food. He came and spoke to me in a friendly way, and
accepted my words with such suavity (Psalm 55:21), that I knew
not but that he would also embrace our faith.</p>

<p>I then said, "Jan Jans, what do you think, will you abandon
this service, and release the prisoners? I shall see that you
will not be a loser by it; for it is in your power, you have
the keys."</p>

<p>Previous to my saying this to him, he had said to our
friends in prison, "Shall I leave the door open some time that
you can escape?""Why should you do this?" replied our friends.
On this account I spoke the more boldly to him, remembering the
words concerning Paul and the jailer (Acts 16:29), if
peradventure the Lord had showed like grace to this man; and
having been urged by our friends, I had along conversation with
him. He asked me whether I knew those whom he named to me. I
said, "No, but I have heard of them." One, however, he
mentioned, whom I well knew."Yes, I know him well," I said. He
asked me, where I was from. I replied, "I am a native of
Schoonhoven," but I did not tell him that I resided at Delft.
But with all my prudence, the devil, as is well known, was
still more- cunning. Gen. 3:1. When we had walked together for
a long time, we arrived again at the prison. He then said, "Do
you want to talk with the prisoners?" I went in without any
fear, and coming to our dear sisters, we conversed together,
without manifesting previous acquaintance, however. This
servant then went off a little ways, and spoke to another
servant. I then plainly saw what I had got myself into.</p>

<p>Now, someone may ask: Why did you go in? O dear friends, my
flesh and blood did not impel me to go in there. In vain we
run; it is just as the prophet says, "We may flee, but cannot
escape." Ps. 139:7. Hence, we must all come whither our destiny
calls us. I had anticipated that my journey to Leyden would not
be a fortunate one.</p>

<p>The other servant then asked me whether I wished to go above
to the others. I thought to myself that it was now as bad as it
could ever become, and went above. They then shut the door
after me, an one of them went for the bailiff. Having been
lbove for a little while, and conversed with our friends, I
went below again. They opened the door, and the night bailiff
stood before it. He said, "You will have to remain here a little
while." I then asked whether I should go above. He
replied, "Yes." I then said: Christ had twelve apostles, and one
was a Judas; but here were only two, and one was a Judas.
However, the Lord be praised for His grace. Without much delay,
they shut me up above alone, whereupon I immediately began to
sing the hymn, "O <i>Waerheydt hoe zijt gy nu vertreden!"</i>
Isa. 59:14.</p>

<p>I did not, however, enjoy a very long respite; since much
people came, and hence they immediately came and took from me
my Testament, and the hymn about our four friends, which I had
composed. They then shut me up with E. S. Soonafter, the
bailiff came with the whole council. The gates were shut, and
it was reported that there were a dozen in Leyden; hence they
were very assiduous, thinking they had caught a great gentleman
or captain; but alas! they had not.</p>

<p>The bailiff then asked, "Where is your rapier?"*</p>

<p>I replied, "My Master has not taught me to carry a
rapier."</p>

<p><i>Bailiff.</i> "Who is your Master?"</p>

<p><i>Adrian.</i> "Christ is my Master."</p>

<p><i>Bailiff.</i> "Christ is the Master of us all."</p>

<p><i>Adrian.</i> "If Christ were your Master, you would not
dare fight against Him; but it will be hard for you to kick
against the pricks." Acts 9:5.</p>

<p><i>Bailiff.</i> "We are responsible for that." They then
asked me where I had slept.</p>

<p><i>Adrian."I</i> have slept well; did you sleep badly?"</p>

<p><i>Bailiff.</i> "No, I shall make you tell." One of the lords
then asked me whether I had been rebaptized. I replied, "No, I
was baptized aright once."</p>

<p><i>Bailiff.</i> "Who baptized you?"</p>

<p>I asked him whether he also wished to be baptized.</p>

<p><i>Bailiff.</i> "Don't be ashamed to tell; I will tell you,
where and by whom I was baptized: here in St. Peter's
church."</p>

<p><i>Adrian.</i> "If you wish to be also baptized, I will tell
you."</p>

<p><i>Bailiff."I</i> have no desire for it as yet."</p>

<p><i>Adrian.</i> "Neither are you fit for it."</p>

<p><i>Bailiff.</i> "Where is the servant with the hat, that
accompanied you?"</p>

<p><i>Adrian."I</i> know nothing of a servant with a hat."</p>

<p><i>Bailiff.</i> "We saw him walk with you."</p>

<p><i>Adrian.</i> "Lord bailiff, you lie; if you are a servant
of Christ, you ought not to lie." Eph. 4:25. They then showed
me the hymn about the friends and asked me who had written
it.</p>

<p>I replied, "I wrote it."</p>

<p>Thereupon they asked,whether I had also composed it. I told
them I wrote it, but said nothing about composing.' The under
bailiff then said, "You were at my house one Friday, and taught me a refrain
about Mary Magdalene?"</p>

<p><i>Adrian.</i> "You have also lied; for my Master has taught
me no refrains."</p>

<p><i>Under bailiff.</i> "Or an exhortation?"</p>

<p><i>Adrian.</i> "It is not so."</p>

<p>The servants and others then said, "The fellow is drunk."</p>

<p>Yes, dear friends, then I remembered the words of Peter,
Acts 2; as they were drunk, so was I, having tasted neither
beer nor bread all day. They were then about to leave, but
found themselves at' a loss where to put me; for John of Delft,
the servant, said, "It is all right with E. S.; but now this</p>

<br /><cite>*A light sword with a very narrow
blade.-Trans.</cite> 

</div><div id="533"> 

<p>rogue will spoil him again." Nevertheless, they put me with
him. All this took place the same Monday on which I was
apprehended.</p>

<p>The following Thursday the bailiff came, with two judges,
and a commissary from the Hague; they asked me many questions,
which I could not answer, and also demanded to know where I had
slept, which I would not tell, together with many other things
too tedious to relate. They also asked, "Do you know Jelis of Aix-la-Chapelle?" I replied, "I never
in my life was at Aix-la-Chapelle." As they kept on asking me
for a long time, I finally said, "I know him." They then asked
where I had been with him. I replied, "I cannot tell you this;"
more I would not say."We shall make you tell," said they."My
lords," I replied,"I have always been careful not to know much,
so that in case I should be apprehended, I might not have much
to tell." They then laid before me the letters I had sent them,
and also the hymn; they readily saw that it was the same
handwriting; but I did not confess it. I thought to
myself, "There is plenty of time yet for it; for I will have to
tell them something any way, when they torture me." For the
matter concerned myself; hence I did not keep it secret, when I
was tortured; but as regards others, I had no warrant to accuse
them, and hence I did not want to know where the friends lived,
when I talked with any one. And let me tell you, dear friends,
this matter is sadly overlooked by some, who are continually
inquiring after this one and that one, and take it amiss, if
you do not give them the desired information. O dear friends,
if you knew what suffering it would mean if you were
imprisoned, you would not make such inquiries. Hence, if you
wish to make any inquiries, inquire after the faith that can
save your souls. See, my dear friends, accept this in good
part; for I have written it out of love. All the torture I have
suffered was inflicted upon me, to make me inform on others;
hence, the less you know, the less you have to answer. The
commissary then examined my Testament, and said, "This is a
proscribed testament." I replied, "There you have also lied."
Thereupon he was silent, and evening came on. They then went
away, promising to consider my case in the daytime.</p>

<p>Saturday morning they all came before eight o'clock, and
took me into the torture chamber, where the executioner was.
They then asked me whether I had not changed my mind, and would
answer their questions. I began to admonish them. They said, "We
have not come here to be taught by you; but we ask you whether
you will answer our questions." But this I did not intend to
do. The executioner then stripped me, and bound my hands behind
my back. There was a windlass there, and tying a block to my
feet, they drew me up and left me hanging. While thus suspended
they interrogated me, but I did not answer. They then let me
down, and the bailiff asked me where I had worked since I left
Flanders. At Delft, I replied. Thereupon they asked me still
other questions, and as I refused to answer them, they drew me
up again, and untied the block. The executioner then placed a
piece of wood or iron between my legs, which had been bound
together, and stood on it. Being let down again, I was asked by
the bailiff, whether I and six of my friends had not been at
Leyden at a certain time, which he specified. I did not confess
it. Again the executioner drew me up, they having blindfolded
my eyes, and they took rods and scourged me. After I was let
down, the bailiff said"Tell it, or I shall tell you?" I would
not accuse any one. They drew me up again, pulled my beard and
hair, and beat and scourged my back; but as my eyes were
blindfolded, I could not see who did it. They might also have
asked, "Who smote you?" Luke 22:64. This continued until I had
been beaten with seven or eight rods. When they let me down,
and I did not answer for a long time, they, fearing that I
should faint away, poured water over me, which they had also
done while I was suspended. I sat down, and as I did not speak
for a long time, the bailiff said, "You will not tell it; I will
tell you: you slept at Stephen Claess'."</p>

<p><i>Adrian.</i> "That is true."</p>

<p>Bailiff."You were here before the prison, with six of your
friends, and exhorted the prisoners, that they should strive
valiantly, and adhere to their faith; and you went and hired a
boat for six stivers. Who was the fellow to whom the boat
belonged, and the one who was in the other boat, who gave the
skipper half a stiver, into whose charge he committed his
chest, because he was to sail with you? And he knew the
fellow's name, and knew also what we had done, and that a woman
was with us, and how we had read, and that two, sat there,
bareheaded, and where we had gone up. I then acknowledged that
it was so, and they wrote it down; however, I excused the two
from those that were in the boat; but it was of no avail, and
thus the matter was left. They then showed me the letters,
about four or five in number."Yes," said I,"I wrote them." Upon
this they said, "This is the placard writer.""It is certainly
not proper," said the judges,"that you disparage the Emperor in
such a manner." I replied, "I do not disparage the Emperor;
however great the Emperor is, the Supreme Emperor is still
greater. Bring me a Bible; I shall prove to you what I have
written." Thereupon they said, "Why did you write these
letters?" I replied, "I wrote them because my grief was stirred,
and that you might no longer stain your hands with blood, and
might repent, as did those of Nineveh." Jonah 3:5. Thus the
matter rested.</p>

<p>They then asked me what I thought of the sacrament of the
altar. I told them that it was good for nothing.</p>

<p>Ques."How long have you not been to it?"</p>

<p>Ans."Not for four years."</p>

</div><div id="534"> 

<p><i>Ques.</i> "Have you belonged to this belief so long?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "No."</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "Why did you not go, then?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "Even in my ignorance I knew that it was good for
nothing?"</p>

<p>Thereupon they went away, having been engaged with me from
eight o'clock until half past eleven in the forenoon.</p>

<p>This is what I said on that occasion."Dear friends, be not
discouraged, though what I have written presents rather a
gloomy aspect; the Lord helps His own; if the Lord had not
helped me, it would not have been possible for me to bear it;
but we can do all things through Him who strengthens us, that
is, Christ. And as the sufferings of Christ abound in us, so
also our consolation aboundeth by Christ." I Cor. 10:-13; Ps.
46:1; Phil. 4:13; II Cor. 1:5.</p>

<p>Here I will let this matter rest. I bear in my body the
marks of the Lord Jesus, spoken of by Paul. Gal. 6:17.</p>

<p>On Sunday morning they came, and read to me my examination,
and asked me whether it was correct: Then I remembered the
words of the prophet, "They are evening wolves, that let nothing
remain till the morrow, yea, whose feet run swiftly to shed
innocent blood." Zeph. 3:3; Prov. 1:16. I then asked the
bailiff whether he was not yet sated with innocent blood, since
he was so diligent in the way of unrighteousness. He replied, "I
do not put you to death." I said, "The Emperor's edict puts us
to death; but you ought therefore be satisfied with what you
have, and not ask for more. By What will you prove that you may
put us to death? It is written: 'If thy brother shall trespass
against thee, go and tell him his fault between thee and him
alone; if he will not hear thee, then take with thee one or two
more; and if he will still not hear, tell it unto the church;
and if he will then not hear, let him be unto thee as a heathen
man and a publican."' Matt. 18:15-17. Here the Scripture says
nothing about putting to death.</p>

<p><i>Bailif.</i> "We have another Scripture, where Paul says:
'The powers are not ordained in vain; for God himself has
ordained them."' Rom. 13:1.</p>

<p><i>Adrian.</i> "Yes, for the protection of the good, and the
punishment of the evil (I Peter 2:14); but it seems to me the
order is inverted, that they are for the.punishment of the
good, and the protection of the evil."</p>

<p><i>Bailiff.</i> "We shall prove to you from books, that we
may put you to death."</p>

<p><i>Adrian."You</i> can not do this with the Gospel?"</p>

<p><i>Under bailiff.</i> "What do you know about the
Gospel?"</p>

<p><i>Adrian.</i> "It is written: 'Repent ye, and believe the
gospel."' Mark 1:15.</p>

<p><i>Under bailiff.</i> "There are eight Gospels written."</p>

<p><i>Adrian."I</i> am well content with four; if these cannot
teach me, neither can the others."</p>

<p><i>Bailiff.</i> "Shall we send you learned men, to instruct
you with the Word of the Lord?"</p>

<p><i>Adrian."I</i> am willing to be instructed with the Word
of the Lord."</p>

<p><i>Bailiff.</i> "Well said."</p>

<p><i>Adrian."I will</i> not speak with them except in the
presence of the court, and of those that are imprisoned with
me."</p>

<p>This did not please them, and they went away, the bailiff
leaving immediately for Delft.</p>

<p>Three weeks after this, the bailiff came into the prison
where we three in number were sitting, and asked us whether we
were not almost beginning to get tired of it., We said, "No." I
then said, "James says-: 'Take it for an example of suffering
affliction.'" James 5:10. It surprised them greatly that we
minded it so little. I then said to the Bailiff, "As the sufferings of Christ abound in us, so our
consolation also aboundeth by Christ." II Cor. 1:5.</p>

<p><i>Bailiff."I</i> should think it would weary you?"</p>

<p><i>Adrian.</i> "Don't you also begin to get weary of shedding
this blood?"</p>

<p>He did not reply. Thereupon he asked whether they should
send us learned men. We replied, "We are always willing to be instructed with the words of
the Lord."</p>

<p><i>Bailiff."You will,</i> not be instructed otherwise than
with the Word of the Lord?"</p>

<p><i>Ans."We</i> are always willing to give our faith for a
better one, that it may not be said that we are obstinate; and
our adversaries ought to do the same."</p>

<p><i>Bailiff.</i> "That is so; suffer yourselves to be
instructed, perhaps your stay here is but brief?"</p>

<p><i>Adrian."You</i> do not know whether <i>your</i> stay here
will be long. Though we are now as forsaken, the Lord will soon
be gracious to us."</p>

<p>With this it rested. He then said, "We shall send you
someone." We called to him, as he descended the stairs, that he
should bring a Bible or Testament with him.</p>

<p>In the afternoon there came a priest with two servants; he
advanced in fine style and laid out his wares, thinking to sell
something, and his words were full of suavity. And when one of
us spoke, he had much to say. Thereupon I said that the Lord
liad warned us of the leaven of the Pharisees, and of them that
go in long clothing.</p>

<p><i>Priest.</i> "The clothing don't make it." I then told him
that their things, as infant baptism, ringing of bells, mass,
and all other trumpery, were good for nothing. Upon this he
replied that holy baptism of infants was right. I asked where
the authorization for it was to be found.</p>

<p>Priest."In the 16th chapter of the first epistle to the
Corinthians." .</p>

<p>Adrian."There it is written: The house of Stephanas are the
first in Achaia who addicted themselves to the ministry of the
saints. These certainly could not have been infants; infants
cannot addict</p>

</div><div id="535"> 

<p>themselves to the ministry of the saints, but have
themselves to be ministered unto."</p>

<p>He asked us in regard to the jailer and his household,
whether there were no infants there.</p>

<p>Ans."No."</p>

<p><i>Priest."How</i> do you know it?"</p>

<p><i>Adrian.</i> "It is written there: 'The jailer rejoiced
with all his house, that he had become a believer in Christ
Jesus.' Infants cannot rejoice in faith; for they have no
faith." Then he was at his wit's end again. He fared likewise
in regard to Lydia, the seller of purple.</p>

<p><i>Priest.</i> "When I was young, my faith was as perfect as
it is now."</p>

<p><i>Adrian.</i> "What did you say then?"</p>

<p>He made no reply. He also said, "When I was born, I had my
hand, and was not conscious of it; so also, my faith, which was
hid in me; and the original sin which I had was taken away
through the regeneration of the water which takes place in the
font." I asked him whether the water had been crucified for
him, or Christ.</p>

<p><i>Priest.</i> "Christ."</p>

<p><i>Adrian.</i> "And yet you seek your salvation in the
water?" He was silent. Dirk Jans then asked</p>

<p>him where it was written that bells ought to be
baptized.</p>

<p><i>Priest.</i> "This is instituted by the holy church." He
also asked him concerning the reading of mass. He replied that
he had God in the mass, corporeally in flesh and blood. I then
told him that he was a deceiver.</p>

<p><i>Priest.</i> "Did not God say: 'Take, eat; this is my body;
and drink, this is my blood, and as often as you eat this
bread, ye do shew the Lord's death?"'</p>

<p>On this point we had much discussion. I then asked him
whether he had read I Tim. 4?</p>

<p><i>Priest.</i> "Yes."</p>

<p>Thereupon I inquired as to whether he had brought a
Testament with him.</p>

<p><i>Priest.</i> "Yes, here is a Latin Testament."</p>

<p><i>Adrian.</i> "We have not studied in Latin universities,
but in the highly celebrated school of the Gospel, of which the
Spirit of God is teacher." John 16:13.</p>

<p>He said he could read it in Dutch. He then read the passage
relating to the forbidding to marry, and the commanding to
abstain from meats. I Tim. 4:3: I asked him concerning whom
this was spoken. He replied that he did not know.</p>

<p><i>Adrian.</i> "If you are a teacher you ought to know
this?"</p>

<p><i>Priest.</i> "It relates to the end of the world."</p>

<p><i>Adrian.</i> "It speaks there of the latter times; now do
you mean to say that these are not the latter times?"</p>

<p>Upon this he replied nothing, but said that he had not
forbidden marriage, nor meats.</p>

<p>We said, "Your father, the pope, has done it, and you exerted
yourselves with Haman to obtain mandates to put us and our
people to death, andcontributed in giving the Emperor ten
thousand pounds of silver?"</p>

<p><i>Priest.</i> "I did not."</p>

<p><i>Adrian.</i> "Are you Christians? Christians ought not to
persecute any one."</p>

<p><i>Priest.</i> "We do not persecute you."</p>

<p>I then asked him, whether the Christian church persecuted,
or suffered persecution.</p>

<p><i>Priest.</i> "It suffers persecution."</p>

<p>I asked him wherein he suffered persecution, whether we were
not the ones that suffer persecution.</p>

<p><i>Priest.</i> "We suffer persecution from the devil."</p>

<p>We then demanded to know where it was written that we might
be put to death for our faith. He replied that it was ordained
on account of the evil sects. We said, "We belong to no
sect."</p>

<p><i>Priest.</i> "It is suspected that it might also be the
case with you."</p>

<p>Thereupon Dirk Jans said, "Is a man hanged because he is
suspected of having stolen; though he has not done so? So
neither may we be put to death before we are convicted."</p>

<p>The priest finally went away. We had silenced him in many
things concerning which he had no understanding. I also said
that he was one of those who rob God of His glory by their
confession, presuming to forgive sins. Herein he was likewise
defeated, whereupon he went away. I hope that we shall soon
offer up our sacrifice together.</p>

<p>O my dear friends, see that you exercise a care for one
another, and walk prudently; because men are so incensed, and
make such strenuous efforts to apprehend our brethren, wherever
they find them. Hence, walk a little more wisely herein, than
some of you do for, dear friends, if the Lord permitted it,
they would deal roughly with them if they had them. Therefore,
take it in good part; for there are so few laborers in the
harvest; hence, take good care of them that are in it.
Moreover, dear friends, when you meet to speak of the Word of
the Lord, spend not your time in idle talk, and old wives'
fables, but exercise yourselves in godliness, that you may be
able to withstand in the evil day, and stand protected in all
things; and always give diligence, in honor to build up the
spiritual temple until the appearing of the Lord. I Tim. 4:7;
Eph. 6:13; I Pet. 2:5. He that is holy let him become holier
still; he that is pure, let him become purer still; as Paul
writes to the Thessalonians, that they need not that he should
write unto them, but he said that they should increase more and
more. Rev. 22:11; I Thess. 4:9, 10. Thus also you, my dear
brethren. Read the exhortation I have written you, which will
no doubt be shown you. Salute all the friends in the Lord,
especially our Brother G., who is a faithful minister; all that
are in bonds salute him, and they also greet all lovers of the
truth. We commend you to the Lord; know, that we are all of
good cheer yet; the Lord be praised always.</p>

<p>My dear friends, I must write you yet a little more. The
paper was not sufficient before, for,</p>

</div><div id="536"> 

<p>dear friends, paper is a precious article when we are in
bonds; but as Habakkuk brought me some more, I write you a few
additional lines concerning certain things that occurred in our
.imprisonment, which were forgotten before. It happened that
the servant who had betrayed me, came to bring us our food. I
then asked him .to forgive me, if I had injured him in any way,
and thus I often talked to him as kindly as I could, which we
are commanded to do. Matt. 5:44. He replied, "You have -not
injured me, nor have any of your people." My kind words, and
the love I manifested, caused him to feel ashamed that he had
betrayed me, and that I spoke to him so' affectionately. Rom.
12:20.</p>

<p>A few more things about the priest that came to instruct us.
I asked him whether he had faith."Yes," he replied. .</p>

<p><i>Adrian. .'.If</i> you should sit here in prison with us
for a month, I think you.would deny your faith."</p>

<p><i>Priest.</i> ."Possibly not."</p>

<p>He then commenced speaking about faith, and said that faith
was incomprehensible.</p>

<p>I said, "If faith is incomprehensible, how then can we be
saved?" Then he was beaten. Thereupon we touched upon the
calling of preachers, and 'the words of Paul, that teachers
must be blameless, and following the passage further on,"given
to hospitality." I then said, "You would rather' be a guest,
than entertain one, and receive strangers;" adding, "If I should come to' your house, would you receive me?"</p>

<p><i>Priest.</i> ".Possibly."</p>

<p>We also discussed infant baptism, which he would prove by
the households. I asked him to whom the Scriptures speak; do
they not speak to them that have ears to hear, and hearts to
understand?</p>

<p>Priest."Yes."</p>

<p>I then asked him whether any Scripture belonged to
infants.</p>

<p><i>Priest.</i> "No."</p>

<p><i>Adrian.</i> "If no Scripture 'belongs to infants, neither
does baptism." Then he was caught and had nothing more to say
about his infant baptism'. He also, spoke in regard to eating
the flesh of Christ, and drinking His blood, how Christ, gave
His apostles flesh from His flesh, and blood to drink
outwardly.' I then said that he was worse than the Jews.</p>

<p><i>Priest.</i> "Why?"</p>

<p><i>Adrian.</i> "The Jews murmured and said: 'How can this man
give us his flesh to eat?' but you now come and would eat
it.""Be assured," said I to the priest,"Christ did not speak
this passage in the sense in which you adduce it." In short; he
would gladly have retreated, could he have done so honorably,
for there was no market for his merchandise.</p>

 
<h1>SIX PIOUS BRETHREN, NAMELY, LIEVIJN JANS, MEYNERT HERMANS, PIETER THYMANS, BEYER EGBERTS, HENDRICK ANTHONISS, CLAES GERBRANTS, ALL BURNT ALIVE FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST,    AT AMSTERDAM, ON THE 6TH DAY OF AUGUST, A. D. 1552</h1>

<p>"The blood of the martyrs," said one of the ancients,"is the
seed of the church; the rose grows in and among the thorns; so
also the rose of the blooming church of Christ." This appeared
in these sore and sorrowful times, when scarcely anything was
heard of but slaying, burning, murdering and shedding of the
blood of the innocent and defenseless lambs of Christ; so that
in that very time far more persons were stirred up to follow
them and embrace their faith; than had been slain before. Whole
bands so to speak, marched to the spiritual conflict, yea, to
the places where nothing but certain death was to be expected.
Each was ready to become an offering for God (if He accounted
him worthy for it.) Neither fire nor sword was feared for the
testimony of the Lord: for they looked to His comforting and,
most glorious promises which He has given to the steadfast.</p>

<p>This appeared in the year 1552, in the month of August, in
the case of six pious Christians, who, having fled from Babel,
betook themselves to the vision of peace, to the spiritual
Jerusalem of the true church of God, notwithstanding many
assaults and storms were made upon them insomuch that it cost
them their lives through the cruel and terrible death by
fire.</p>

<p>The circumstances of the case were as follows</p>

<p>Three of them had already through baptism been accepted as
members of the church, and the other three were ready for it.
In the meantime they were all apprehended, and brought to
Amsterdam, where they all made a good confession of that most
holy faith, which dwelt in their souls, though the
lastmentioned three greatly deplored the one fact, namely, that
they were not baptized to which they, if it had been possible,
would have yet attended before their death.</p>

<p>In short, sentence of death was passed upon them all, namely
that they should be executed as heretics with fire, that is, in
common language, burnt alive; which cruel death they all
steadfastly endured, as appears from the following sentence,
which we received from the book of criminal sentences of the
city, of Amsterdam, just as it was read in the court
immediately before their death, and which we shall therefore
here adduce as an indubitable attest of the afore-mentioned
matter.</p>

<h2>Sentence o f death of the ofore-mentioned six
per-</h2> 

<h2>sons, Liev~jn Jans, Meynert Hermans, Pieter</h2> 

<h2>Thymans, Reyer Egberts, Hendrick</h2> 

<p class="c11">Anthoniss, Claes Gerbrants</p>

<p>Whereas Lievijn, son of Jans of Ghent, otherwise called
Liefken de Keyser, weaver by trade;</p>

</div><div id="537"> 

<p>Meynert Hermans of Balch, wood sawyer; Pieter Thymans of
Sutphen. formerly cooper, now bookbinder by trade; Reyer
Egberts, citizen of this city, Hendrick Anthoniss, of Leyden,
both of them weavers; and Claes Gerbrants, native of Wormer,
have resorted to the conventicles and gatherings of the
Anabaptistical sect, and gone to hear the doctrines of the
heads or teachers of said sect, n mely, said Claes Gerbrants
the doctrines of Menno Simons, ten years ago, and said Lievijn
of Ghent, and all the others, the doctrines of Gillis, of
Aix-la-Chapelle; and forasmuch as they, adhering to the
doctrines, errors and heresies promulgated by the aforesaid
false teachers, have separated from the faith, obedience and
unity of the holy Christian church, and hold pernicious views
with regard to the sacraments of the holy church, insomuch that
the aforesaid Lievijn, Meynert and Pieter, have been rebaptized
by said Gillis, of Aixla-Chapelle, thus renouncing the baptism
which they received in their infancy, and the aforesaid Reyer
Egberts, Hendrick Anthoniss, and Claes Gerbrants, likewise
renouncing their aforesaid baptism have confessed themselves to
be ready for rebaptism, if they can attain to it, all of which
is contrary to the holy Christian faith, the ordinances of the
holy church, and the written laws and decrees of his Imperial
Majesty, our gracious lord; and as they moreover, obstinately
persist in their unbelief, heresy and errors; therefore, my
lords the judges, having heard the demand made by my lord the
bailiff, concerning the aforesaid delinquents, together with
their confessions, and having duly regarded the circumstances
of the aforesaid case, condemn said delinquents to be executed
with fire by the executioner, and furthermore declare their
property confiscated for the benefit of his Imperial Majesty,
as count of Holland and our gracious lord, without derogation
or prejudice to the privileges of this city. Done and
pronounced in the court, on the 6th day of August, A. D. 1552,
in the presence of all the judges, <i>dempto</i> Andries
Boelen, by the advice of the Burgomaster.</p>

<p class="c8"><i>Concerning the Torturing of Hendrick
Anthoniss</i><br />
<i>and Reyey Egberts, and when it Occurred</i></p>

<p>Of these, two were examined by torture, namely, Hendrick
Anthoniss, on the 28th of June, and Reyer Egberts on the last
of June, 1552.</p>

<p>Thus extracted from the book of criminal sentences,
preserved at Amsterdam, in the keeping of the secretary of the
city.</p>

<p class="c8">N. N.</p>

<h2>PIETER VAN OLMAN, OR VAN WERWIJCK, PUT TO<br />
DEATH AT GHENT, ALSO A LETTER, WHICH<br />
THE SAID PIETER VAN OLMAN, OR VAN<br />
WERWIJCK, WROTE IN PRISON IN<br />
THAT CITY, WHERE HE GAVE HIS<br />
LIFE FOR THE TESTIMONY<br />
of JESUS, A. D. 1552</h2> 

<p>The abundant grace and peace from God the Father and the
Lord Jesus Christ be with you. Grace and peace be with you from
God our Father and our Lord Jesus Christ, who is the Father of
mercies, and the God of all comfort, who comforteth us in all
our tribulation, that we may be able to comfort them which are
in any trouble, by the comfort wherewith we ourselves are
comforted of God. For as the sufferings of Christ abound in us,
so our consolation also aboundeth by Christ. For our light
affliction, which is but for a moment, worketh for us a far
more exceeding and eternal weight of glory; while we look not
at the things which are seen, but at the things which are not
seen; for the things which are seen are temporal; but the
things which are not seen are eternal. For we know that if our
earthly house of this tabernacle were dissolved, we have a
building of God, a house not made with hands, eternal in the
heavens. For in this we groan, earnestly desiring to be clothed
upon with our house which is from heaven: if so be that being
clothed we shall not be found naked. For we that are in this
tabernacle do groan, being burdened: not for that we would be
unclothed, but clothed upon, that mortality might be swallowed
up of life. Now he that hath wrought us for the selfsame thing
is God, who also giveth unto us the earnest of the Spirit.
Therefore we are always confident, knowing that, whilst we are
at home in the body, we are absent from the Lord; for we walk
by faith, not by sight. We are confident, I say, and willing
rather to be absent from the body, and to be present with the
Lord. I Cor. 1:3-5; II Cor. 4:17, 18; 5:1-8; Rom. 8:22; Rev.
3:18.</p>

<p>I admonish you, dear brethren and sisters, by the mercies of
God, that you will diligently assemble yourselves together, to
give each other good instruction in the eternal truth of our
Saviour, while you have time; for here we have no continuing
city, but we wait for one, and this through patience. Heb.
10:25; 13:14.</p>

<p>Therefore, dear brethren and sisters, take the Word of the
Lord well to heart, and understand well what the Lord says,
that you may stand fast valiantly, when you are tried; for I
tell you, dear brethren, that valiant fighting must be done to
a much greater extent than I thought; for they approach us with
such subtle questions, and honeyed words, in order that they
may catch us in some word, and thus cause us to apostatize.
Hence, dear brethren, teach one another well to discern which
is the way of the Lord, and the way of the devil, and which is
the true worship of God, and the worship of the devil and of
idols, and which</p>

</div><div id="539"> 

<p>are the children of the Lord, and the children of the devil;
for the children of the Lord are not of this world; hence the
world hates them; they all suffer persecution; they are led to
death, as sheep for the slaughter, and are hated by all men;
they are a prey to all; they have nowhere a certain
dwelling-place; they are the offscouring of all men; they weep
and lament, and the world rejoices; they suffer reproach,
because they trust in the living God. In this the children of
God are manifest, and the children of the devil: he that doeth
righteousness is righteous, even as he is righteous; he that
committeth sin is of the devil. Therefore, O dear little
children, love not the world, neither the things that are in
the world; for if any man love the world, the love of the
Father is not in him. For all that is in the world, the lust of
the flesh, and the lust of the eyes, and the pride of life; is
not of the Father but is of the world. And the world passeth
away, and the lust thereof, but he that doeth the will of God
abideth forever. Jas. 1:27; John 17:16; Ps. 44:22; Isa. 59:15;
I Cor. 4:11, 13; Jno. 16:20; I Tim. 4:10; I Jno. 3:10;
2:15-17.</p>

<p>My most beloved, know that I fought a great conflict against
the rulers of darkness and false prophets; for they said that
one may nevertheless hear,. and be taught by, them, though they
do not live according to the commandments of the Lord. I then
asked, "Is not he a stranger to the Lord who walks not in his
commandments?" They replied, "Yes." Then I said that Christ says
(John 10:27), "My sheep hear my voice, and they follow me; but
they hear not the voice of strangers, but flee from them, "
hence, if I should hear strangers, I would not be of Christ's
sheep; for His sheep hear not strangers. ' They replied, "They
certainly preach the truth; the word is therefore not
diminished." I replied, "John says (I John 2:4): He that saith
that he knoweth God, and keepeth not his commandments, is a
liar, and the truth is not in him. Now, if there is no truth in
him, how can he speak the truth? Else John must lie. Christ
says (Matt. 7:18): A corrupt tree cannot bring forth good
fruit. Again (Matt. 12:34): How can ye, being evil, speak good
things? Solve this question, and I will believe you." I tell
you, though he should take a Testament, and.read it from
beginning to end in your church, as the apostles have written
it, yet I will prove to them, that they lie. But let a man
speak the same words, who walks in the ways of the Lord, and he
will speak the truth. If one of your people should preach these
words in your temple, with regard to drunkards, adulterers,
thieves, murderers, covetous, defamers, evil-speakers, etc.,
and say: Ye are a chosen generation, a royal priesthood, a holy
nation, a peculiar people; that ye should shew forth the
virtues of him who hath called you out of darkness into his
marvelous light: which in time past were not a people, but are
now the people of God; which had not obtained mercy, but now
have obtained mercy (I Pet. 2:9, 10); if he should speak these
words with regard to this wicked people, would he not lie? But
if a God-fearing man were to speak these words with reference
to the God-fearing people, he would speak the truth. Again, if
you should preach: For thy sake we are led to death, as sheep
for the slaughter; would this not also be a lie from you</p>

<p>But a God-fearing man would speak the truth.</p>

<p>Thus we had many words, but all to no purpose. I then asked
whether the children of the Lord must not all be
spiritual."Yes," he replied. Thereupon I asked, why then they
were called spiritual, and the others secular, when they must
all be spiritual. This they were not able to explain. I then
said</p>

<p>Christ prays not for the world, but for them that are not of
the world (John 17:9); now, if you are spiritual, how comes it
that you are not all of one mind? for some may only go in gray;
are not allowed to handle money, and their shoes must have an
opening on the top; others must all go in black; some, again,
all in several colors; and others may not eat cooked food, and
may not talk with father or mother when they see them; but when
they do not see them, they talk with them. I said, "These are all different sects, planted by men, and not by
God; therefore they will all be rooted up." Matt. 15:13. To
this they did not have much to say. I then said, "Your doctrine
is the doctrine of the devil; for all that is done and
observed, is contrary to the truth, as Paul says (I Tim. 4:1,
3)</p>

<p>That in the latter times some shall depart from the faith,
giving heed to seducing spirits, and doctrines of devils;
forbidding to marry, and commanding to abstain from meats,
which God hath created. Now I see that you teach this; for you
forbid to marry, and command to abstain from meats." Then they
bade me go away.</p>

<p>Soon after, the Dean of Ronse came, and with him another
priest; they assailed me most severely with subtle questions;
but the Lord preserved me, so that I was not betrayed. He asked
me whether I did not believe that the bread which Christ gave
His apostles was the body of Christ, when He said, "Take, eat; this is my body, which is broken for you?" I
replied, "That bread was not the body of Christ, which was
broken for us; it was for a memorial." He rejoined, "The bread
became changed into His body." But I said, that it was for a
memorial, and was not the body itself. They then questioned me
in regard to baptism, whether infants did not have to be
baptized. I said, "There is nothing written of infant baptism,
but of baptism upon faith." Then they said."Behold, we will
prove that infants must be baptized. Does not Christ say, John
3: 'Except a man be born again, of water and of the Spirit, he
cannot inherit the kingdom of God?"' I said, "This is not spoken
to infants, but to those who can hear." But they said, "It is,"
and would thereby prove and establish infant baptism. Thus we
had many words, but agreed in nothing.</p>

<p>Therefore I admonish you, dear brethren and sisters, to
instruct one another well in all matters,</p><br />
 

</div><div id="539"> 

<p>namely, concerning the Supper, baptism, the incarnation of
Christ, and in regard to the spiritual children and the
children of the world; and walk wisely in the fear of the Lord,
and fear not men, though they rage furiously. I also admonish
you; dear brethren and sisters, by the love of our Lord, that
you will all pray the Lord for me, so that I may stand fast
valiantly, when I am tried. I furthermore entreat you, that you
will diligently instruct my beloved mother, in all matters, and
also my brother, and my wife, if haply they might become
converted. The Lord fill you with His Spirit, Amen. Written in
fear on account of the people who were constantly here. The
abundant grace and peace from God the Father and the Lord Jesus
Christ be with you. Amen.</p>

<p>He that feareth the Lord will do good. Sir.
15:1.</p>

<h2>THE LAD CORNELIS VAN KULENBURGH, A. D.
<i>1552,</i></h2> 

<p>In the year <i>1552,</i> there was apprehended under the
administration of the Count of Kulenburgh, for the testimony of
Jesus, a lad called Cornelis; he was kept imprisoned at said
place about three years, and then burnt for the truth of
Christ. During his, imprisonment he was greatly assailed by
priests, monks and prelates, who were gathered in the castle of
Kulenburgh. These ministers of said Roman antichrist laid many
snares for said youth, to entrap his soul; they inflicted
severe tortures upon him, that he should name his
fellow-believers, and then plied him again with fair promises
of this world, herein following the example of their master,
Satan, with our Saviour Jesus. But this prisoner, though young
in years, yet old in the faith, through the grace of God
valiantly resisted this temptation, on which account he was
[condemned to death] * by said count, the latter being
constrained to this by the so-called <i>spirituals</i>
(priests), and his desire to remain a friend of the pope. Jno.
19:12. Thus this pious youth had to pay for it; he was placed
at a stake, and while there, the priests yet came to him, and
tried to make him apostatize</p>

<p>but he chose much rather to die for the name of Jesus, than
to depart from the truth; and Was therefore burnt at the stake,
thus becoming a partaker of the sufferings of Christ, for which
he will be rewarded with everlasting joy, when the great God
shall be revealed.</p>

<p>Concerning this, see hymn in <i>History LiedtEoeck.</i></p>

<br /><cite>*As indicated by the brackets, these words are
not found in the original, but have been inserted by us, to
complete the sense, which has apparently been marred by a
typographical, or other, omission.-Trans.</cite> 

<h2>HERMAN JANS OF SOLLEM, BURNT ALIVE FOR THE<br />
TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, AT AMSTERDAM,<br />
ON THE 16TH OF FEBRUARY, <i>1553</i></h2> 

<p>The distress of this time was very great, and did not cease;
insomuch that all who truly left the idolatrous Roman Babel,
and turned to the spiritual Jerusalem of the peaceable church
of Jesus Christ, were forthwith declared to have forfeited
their lives.</p>

<p>This appeared in the beginning of the year <i>1553,</i> at
Amsterdam, in the case of Herman Jans, a nafive of Sollem and a
pious, God-fearing novice, who stood prepared to receive
baptism on the confession of his faith. Being yet in his first
zeal for the divine truth, he was apprehended by the rulers of
wickedness, and brought a prisoner to Amsterdam, where he had
to suffer much vexation and torment, inflicted upon him for the
purpose of drawing him from the faith; but remaining immovable
and steadfast, he was sentenced to death, to be burnt as a
heretic; which sentence was publicly read to him in the court,
on the 14th day of January, <i>1553,</i> and also executed on
him the same day; as appears from the following sentence, which
we, in proof of this matter, have received from the criminal
records of the city of Amsterdam. It reads as follows</p>

<p><i>Sentence of death of Herman Jans of Sollem.</i></p>

<p>Whereas Herman Jans, a native of Sollem, has frequented the
assemblies of the Anabaptists, received their admonition,
doctrines and errors, and attended certain conventicles
(gatherings), in which, by Gillis of Aix-la-Chapelle, as also
by others, improper things were taught concerning the
Scriptures, so that renouncing the baptism administered to him,
he has confessed to have desired to receive another baptism, if
he should be able to attain it, and also holds pernicious views
with regard to the holy sacrament of the altar, all of which is
contrary to the ordinances and the faith of the holy Christian
Church, and the written laws and decrees of his Imperial
Majesty, our gracious lord; and as he, moreover, obstinately
persists in his unbelief, heresy and error, notwithstanding the
instruction given him by the truly sent; therefore, my lords
the judges, having heard the demand made by my lord the
bailiff, concerning the aforesaid Herman Jans, together with
the confession of the latter, and having duly regarded the
circumstances of the case, condemn said Herman Jans, pursuant
to the aforesaid decrees, to be executed with fire by the
executioner, and furthermore declare his property confiscated,
for the benefit of his Imperial Majesty, as count of Holland.
Thus pronounced and executed on the sixteenth day of January,
A. D. 1553, in the presence of the bailiff, Pieter Cantert and
Joost Buyck, Burgomasters, and all the judges, by the advice of
the other two burgomasters.</p>

<p>Thus extracted from the book of criminal sentences of the
city of Amsterdam, in the keeping of the secretary there.</p>

<p class="c8">N. N.</p>

</div><div id="540"> <br />
 

<h2>FELISTIS JANS, SURNAMED RESINX, BURNT AT<br />
AMSTERDAM, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS<br />
CHRIST, ON THE 16TH OF JANUARY, IN<br />
THE YEAR 1553</h2> 

<p>On the same day, in the court, and for the same reason, also
a certain maiden, named Felistis Jans, and surnamed Resinx, a
native of Vreden, in Westphalia, was sentenced to the fire, as
appears from the written sentence which we have concerning it,
from the original criminal records of the city of Amsterdam, as
also the date when she was tortured, all of which we could here
adduce verbatim; however to avoid prolixity, we will briefly
extract the substance from it, making distinct divisions, so
that it may be clearly seen upon what her death was
founded.</p>

<h2>BRIEF EXTRACT FROM THE SENTENCE OF DEATH<br />
OF FELISTIS, DAUGHTER OF JANS, OR<br />
FELISTIS RESINX</h2> 

<p>After giving her name, and the place of her nativity, there
are presented.first the accusations with which she was charged,
comprised in the following divisions</p>

<p>1. That she had resorted to the assembly of the sect of the
Anabaptists.</p>

<p>2. That she had separated from the obedience and faith of
the (so-called) holy (that is, the Roman) church.</p>

<p>3. That she held pernicious views with regard to the
sacrament of the altar.</p>

<p>4. That she had harbored in her house such persons .as she
knew to belong to said sect (that is, to the sect of the
so-called Anabaptists).</p>

<p>5. That she had seduced several persons from the obedience
of the (Roman) church, to her belief.</p>

<p>6. That she herself obstinately adhered to the
afore-mentioned (so-called) errors, refusing to abandon
them.</p>

<p>7. That all this was contrary to the ordinances of the holy
church, and the decrees of his Imperial Majesty.</p>

<p>Thereupon follows the conclusion, namely: That for this she
should be executed with fire by the executioner, and that all
her property should be confiscated or forfeited, for the
benefit of the Emperor.</p>

<p>Thus pronounced, etc., as above.</p>

<p>Then the time is mentioned, when she was tortured, in regard
to which these words .are found, "This Felistis was subjected to the torture or rack the 2nd
of January, 1553."</p>

<p>Extracted from the book of criminal sentences, in the
keeping of the secretary of the city of Amsterdam.</p>

<p class="c8">N. N.</p>

<p>NOTE.-The year in which the death of this Felistis occurred,
was not correctly noted* by the preceding writers of the
History of the Martyrs, nor</p>

<br /><cite>*The year 1551 was given.</cite> 

<p>was her full name* given, until we, by means of the
afore-mentioned sentence, made the necessary corrections.</p>

<p>Besides the above, it is also worthy of note that old
writers state that she was a virtuous and honorable young
maiden, and that through her long imprisonment she became so
intimate with the jailer's wife, that the latter employed her
as maidservant, to assist her in her household duties.</p>

<p>When it happened upon a time, that the jailer's wife had
some filth to carry out doors, but had no one around her whom
she could order to do it, Felistis said, "Shall I do it?"
whereupon the jailer's wife replied, "Would you not run away?"
Felistis said, "No." But reflecting a little on the matter, and
considering the frailness of human intentions, she would not
undergo this test, and hence, declined to do it, which was
certainly a good resolution on the part of a seemingly weak
young maiden.</p>

<p>Shortly after, the old writers state, she was seen coming to
the scaffold, to be burnt, cleanly, attired and having on a
white apron, as though by her outward garments she meant to
indicate how purely and uprightly a Christian virgin ought to
be adorned inwardly, in order to be acceptable before her
beloved heavenly bridegroom, Christ Jesus.</p>

<p>Thus she offered up her sacrifice, and was numbered among
the holy and God-pleasing martyrs. Compare this with the
<i>Martyrs Mirror of the Defenseless Christians, edition</i>
1631, <i>page</i> 125.</p>

<h2>WOUTER VAN CAPELLE, A. D. 1553</h2> 

<p>In the year 1553, a God-fearing brother, named Wouter
Capelle, was apprehended at Diexmuyde, in Flanders, for living
according to and following the Word of God, and confessed and
sealed the faith of the truth with his death and blood at said
place; as an instructive example worthy of -imitation to all
true believers, to look at his end, and to follow their faith,
especially the Captain of the faith, Christ Jesus, blessed for
ever. And since this witness of God suffered for the truth and
testimony of the Word of God, and not for any crime, he
obtained, through the grace of God, the crown of eternal life,
promised by God to all those put to death by men for the Word
of God: that they shall be raised up in great glory at the last
day.</p>

<h2>TIJS, A YOUNG MAN, AND BEERENTGE, A YOUNG MAIDEN,
A. D. 1553</h2> 

<p>In the year 1553, a bachelor, named Tijs, and a maiden by
the name of Beerentge, were drowned at Leeuwaerden, in
Friesland, for the testimony of Jesus. They were two zealous
followers of Christ; for this reason they had a great desire,
to meet at some time for the purpose of rejoicing with each
other in the Word of God. However this could not</p>

<br /><cite>*She was simply called Felistis.</cite> 

</div><div id="541"> 

<p>well be, since Tijs was lame, and Beerentge was constantly
confined to her bed. But at last God permitted them to come
together; for the persecutors went out to apprehend the people
of Gad, who, having perceived this, escaped their hands for
this time: however, the former were not willing to return empty
handed, and hence, took with them the afore-mentioned two
invalid persons, and brought them prisoners to Leeuwaerden,
where they were confined together for some time, during which
they rejoiced very greatly with each other in the Lord their
Creator, so that love, which is stronger than death, and firmer
than hell, shone forth most fervently. Cant. 8:6. Sentence of
death was therefore then passed upon them, namely, that both
should be drowned. This was taken greatly amiss on the part of
Tijs; it grieved him much, and he said, "Cats and dogs are
drowned." Hence they sought to obtain a transmutation of the
sentence and requested to be executed on the place of
execution, so that they might obtain the crown with their
beloved brethren, and that the people present might hear and
see for what cause they died. But this was refused them, and
the execution of the sentence was proceeded with. They, about
midnight, (ashamed as it were, to put to death such infirm
persons) put both together into a bag, with their mouths
gagged, threw them into a boat, and had them cast into the moat
on the outside of the wall, and having been tied to the boat,
the two were dragged along the moat until death ensued. Thus
they rid themselves of these pious lights and witnesses of
Christ, whom their eyes could not bear to look upon. Wisd.
2:15. But the righteous God, who goes with His people through
water and fire (Isa. 53:2), will avenge this deed in due time,
and give these worthy children of God rest and peace with Him
forever; and this murder, which was perpetrated in the dark,
will be justly avenged in His great day, when every secret
shall be brought into the light of open day.</p>

<p>Concerning this, see hymn in <i>History Liedtboeck.</i></p>

<h2>SIMON THE SHOPKEEPER, A. D. 1553</h2> 

<p>About the year 1553 there was at Bergen op Zoom, in Brabant,
a shopkeeper, named Simon, who stood in the marketplace, to
sell his wares. When the priests passed him with their idol,
this Simon did not dare give divine honor to this idol made by
human hands (Dan. 3:18), but, according to the testimony of God
presented in the holy Scriptures, would worship and serve only
the Lord his God. He was therefore apprehended by the
maintainers of the Roman antichrist, and examined in the faith,
which he freely confessed, rejecting their self-invented infant
baptism together with all human commandments, and holding fast
only to the testimony of the Word of God; hence he was
sentenced to death by the enemies of thetruth, and was thus led
without the city, and burnt for the testimony of Jesus. Many of
the people present were therefore greatly astonished when they
beheld the great boldness and steadfastness of this pious
witness of God, who thus through grace obtained the crown of
eternal life.</p>

<p>The bailiff who had him executed, on returning home from
this deed, was laid upon a bed of severe sickness, and
constantly exclaimed with sorrow and remorse, "O Simon, Simon!"
and although the priests and monks sought to absolve him, they
were nevertheless not able to give him the least comfort, but
he soon died in despair, an instructive and memorable example
to all tyrants and persecutors. II Macc. 9:9, 28; Acts
12:23.</p>

<br />

<h1>JOOS KINDT, A. D. 1553.</h1>
<h2>A LETTER OR CONFESSION OF
JOOS KINDT, IMPRISONED AT KORTRIJCK, WHERE HE SUBSEQUENTLY LOST HIS LIFE AT THE STAKE, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS, A. D. 1553, RECKONING THE BEGINNING OF THE YEAR FROM NEW YEAR'S DAY</h2>

<p>Grace be with you, and peace, from God the Father, and our
Lord Jesus Christ; may He comfort and strengthen us with His
Holy Spirit, that we may be able to stand against the assaults
of the devil, who, as Peter says, walketh about us, as a
roaring lion, seeking whom he may devour, and resist him with a
firm faith. Know then, dear friends, that I have such a
conflict against the carnal lords, insomuch that they assail me
with their sophistries, seeking to draw me from the obedience
of our dear Lord; however, I trust that the Lord will succor
me, which I do not doubt; for God, comforting His own, says.
through the prophet Isaiah (49:15), "Though a mother forsake her
child, yet will I not forsake thee;" which the Lord shows in me
in a wonderful manner-let every tongue praise Him. Yea, if I
had as much paper as I ever wrote on, and time to write, I
could not describe the joy and gladness I experience; yea, my
joy is unspeakable.</p>

<p>But N. is sick, and asks that you would diligently entreat
the Lord for him; for he is ready to go into the fire, but he
cannot resist the enemies of the cross; for they assail him
with sophisms, for their teacher, the devil, knows much
sophistry, which he showed when he came to tempt our Saviour in
the wilderness, as is written in the Gospel. Now, if he
employed his sophistry on our Saviour, Z am not cast down,
though I have a little of conflict; for, dear friends, they
could easily be resisted if they used arguments, but they
assail him altogether with lies. Since their father is a liar,
as our Saviour also told them, they have the nature of their
father, which they partly manifested with regard to me, all of
which I cannot communicate to you; but I hope that the Lord
will give me so</p>

</div><div id="542"> 

<p>much grace that I may write a little about the disputation
with the carnal.</p>

<p>Know then, that Ronse and Polet came into the prison on
Saturday afternoon, and summoned me before them. When I came to
them, I asked them what they wished of me. They replied, "This
will be told you." They inquired how old I was. I replied, "That
I do not know; if you want correct infoJrmation on this point,
you must ask my mother."</p>

<p><i>Ronse.</i> "Tell us as near as you know."</p>

<p>Joos."Between twenty and thirty years." Then their clerk
wrote, "Between thirty and forty."</p>

<p><i>Ronse.</i> "When were you to confession last?"</p>

<p>Joos."Why do you ask this?"</p>

<p><i>Ronse.</i> "I want to know it."</p>

<p>Joos."You did not have me apprehended? you well know how it
is with me."</p>

<p>Ans."We do."</p>

<p>Joos."Of whom are you, or in whose name have you come to
me?"</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "In the name of God."</p>

<p>Joos."I don't believe this."</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "Why?"</p>

<p>Joos."Because you have apprehended me, to find out how it is
with me; for all whom the Lord has sent to go and teach,
imprisoned no one; for He sent them out, and commanded them,
that if they came to a place, and were not received, they
should shake off the dust from their feet, and depart from
there." Matt. 10:14.</p>

<p><i>Polet."You</i> have doubtless read, that Paul delivered
some to the devil." I Cor. 5:5.</p>

<p>Joos."Show me where Paul cast them into prison; this I want
to know of you."</p>

<p><i>Polet."I</i> don't know."</p>

<p>Joos."Why then do you undertake to quote Scriptures to any
one, which you do not understand yourself? yea, more than that,
to apprehend people, to bring them to the faith, even if your
faith were good, which I do not hold to be the case, for I do
not believe that you are from God."</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "Why?"</p>

<p>Joos."Because the Lord says: 'I will have obedience, and not
sacrifice' (I Sam. 15:22); and because ye do not obey Him."</p>

<p><i>Ques"</i>Wherein?"</p>

<p>Joos. 'Because Christ commanded to point the erring to the
right way; now, you say that I have gone astray-why then did
you not show me what is right? for I. seek nothing but what is
right."</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "For this purpose we have come."</p>

<p>Joos."Then you should have come to the place where I
lived."</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "We did not know where you lived."</p>

<p>Joos."You knew it well enough to send the bailiff."</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "Had you been a good sheep, it would not have
been necessary."</p>

<p>Joos."Christ left the ninety and nine, and went to seek that
which was lost."</p>

<p>Then Ronse said, "Do you not believe that I am appointed your
superior, by our holy father, the pope, and our gracious lord,
the Emperor?"</p>

<p>Joos."I know no superior save Christ."</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "How; don't you recognize the Emperor at
all?"</p>

<p>I told him, that I was well content to have him be my
superior according to the flesh. Then they wrote that I
recognized no superior according to the spirit save Christ, and
the Emperor according to the flesh.</p>

<p>Ronse then said, "When were you to confession last, tell me
this?"</p>

<p>Joos."I do not wish to speak to you here."</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "Why?"</p>

<p>Joos."I shall speak before the lords in full court.", "There," said they,"it would be at the risk of your life, if
you should say anything of consequence. Tell me," said he,"what
do you think of infant baptism?" Being urged to speak, I
replied, "Nothing."</p>

<p><i>Ronse.</i> "Yea, in what baptism then do you believe?"</p>

<p>Joos."I know of but one faith, and one baptism."</p>

<p><i>Ronse.</i> "How long since you were baptized?"</p>

<p>Joos."Half a year, or thereabout." This they noted down.</p>

<p><i>Ques.</i> "What do you hold concerning the Roman
church?"</p>

<p>Joos."I do not hold the least article of all they hold."</p>

<p>This was also written down. They asked me so much, that I
said to them, "I have freely confessed my faith, and am ready to
go alive into the fire for it; hence be content that you know
my faith." They asked a great deal. I said, "Go away from me; I
regard you as enemies of the cross of Christ; hence, go away
from me, for you know the ground of my faith, which I have
freely confessed to you. Do therefore to me what you please;
for it is through the grace of the Lord that I have these
members, and I am also ready to give them up by the grace of
the Lord, yea, to present them for His holy praise." II Macc.
7:11. They spoke much, but I said, "Go away from me, and come no
more where I am, for you are against God. Matt. 12:30. Do you
not fear the Lord? See what is written Matt. 13, concerning the
tares of the field. Now since you say that I am evil, the Lord
has commanded that it should be left to grow until the
harvest."</p>

<p><i>Ans.</i> "If we were to let it grow up, you would corrupt
us all."</p>

<p><i>Polet.</i> "Does not Augustine say"-</p>

<p>Joos."Don't speak of Augustine, for I do not know him; I
hold no doctrine save that of the apostles and prophets, and of
the words which our Saviour brought from high heaven, from the
mouth of His heavenly Father, and sealed with His precious
blood; for this I want to go into the</p>

</div><div id="543"> 

<p>fire; but Augustine, Gregory, Ambrose, these I know
not."</p>

<p><i>Ronse.</i> "Yea, do you not believe that our blessed
Saviour is concealed in the holy sacrament?"</p>

<p>Loos."I do not believe this."</p>

<p><i>Ronse.</i> "Where then is He?"</p>

<p>Joos."At the right hand of His heavenly Father, and He will
at the last descend with the glory of His Father, to judge the
quick and the dead. Fear this strict judgment, and amend your
ways; put on sackcloth and clothing of hair; repent, and go to
the people, whom you keep running after your false worship;
warn them, for you murder their souls, since you say that you
have the key of the kingdom of heaven, from the time of St.
Peter, and that the same has always remained in your
possession. Well does Christ say that you have the key, and
that you will not enter yourselves, and those that desire to go
in you hinder." Matt. 23:13.</p>

<p><i>Ronse.</i> "Who baptized you? did Jelis the Baptist,
baptize you?"</p>

<p>Joos."You know how it is with me; be satisfied."</p>

<p><i>Polet.</i> "It was Adam Pastor."</p>

<p><i>Ronse.</i> "Or David Joris."</p>

<p>I kept silent.</p>

<p><i>Ronse."loos,</i> tell me who were your sponsors?"</p>

<p>.loos."I know of no sponsors."</p>

<p><i>Ronse.</i> "Your witnesses?"</p>

<p>Joos."I have told you that it took place; hence be content
therewith; for I have such confidence in the Lord, that I trust
He will keep the door of my mouth so that I shall tell you
nothing, though you should tear me to pieces."</p>

<p>They asked me a great deal. I said, "Go away from me; for you
are not of God." They replied, "We are." I said, "Away! go away
from me, go from me, and come no more where I am." Much more
yet took place, but it would take too long to write it. Finally
they went away, and I was led back into my cell.</p>

<p>On Sunday I was taken to the house of the judges where the
court was assembled. There were also present there Salome, Sir
Cornelis, Dean of Kestenne; Ronse, and Polet. I was placed in
the middle, firmly bound and held by two thief-catchers. I
said, "My lords, what is your wish?"</p>

<p><i>Ronse."This will</i> be told you."</p>

<p>They then read the confession of my faith, which they had
written in prison, and asked me whether I was still of the same
mind. I replied, "Yes: I am still ready to go into the fire for it." Ronse
asked whether I did not believe that Christ had taken His flesh
from Mary. I said, "No." Then it seemed as though Sir.Cornelis
would faint away; he blessed and crossed himself much, and all
were horrified. There was a little discussion about it; but
they, like dragons, breathed their poison into the judges, each
taking a judge, and said, "True, it is written so; but he has
not the understanding; the Scriptures want to be understood."
And they adduced many far-fetched sophisms, and filled the ears
of the lords, and asked me many sophistical questions. I
said, "I have confessed my faith to you; be satisfied therewith;
and I pray you, not that I am worthy of it, but by the crimson
blood of our dear Lord, let me in peace; you have my faith, and
hold me in your hands here; be satisfied, and do what you
please."</p>

<p>Then Rouse asked me whether I had not been present
somewhere, and adjured me three times by my baptism, that I
should tell who was present. I told him that I would not tell
him one word. Ronse said, "You have denied your baptism; Menno
will take it ill, that you deny your baptism." I said, "My faith and baptism I know, but with your adjuration I
have nothing to do; I thereby know that you are sorcerers."
Then Polet said, "We may swear." I replied, "See Matt. 5, whether
he does not prohibit swearing altogether." They said, "No." I said, "Yes." Then Polet looked into a Bible which
they had brought with them, a large book, and it read there
just as I had said.</p>

<p>Thereupon Sir Cornelis said, "The Bible is false; our Latin
Bible reads differently." I said, "Do you bring false books to
me? Why do you say it is false? And it is privileged-why then
do you let them circulate with privilege, seeing you examine
them?" He replied, "I did not examine them." I said, "Some of the
learned men at Louvain." Then Ronse whispered to Sir Cornelis
Roose and said, "It is true, they are examined, and were good,
but the printer had a boy, who misprinted them, while his
master was gone to town. Ronse asked me how it came that I so
easily believed a man whom I perhaps would never more see, and
suffered myself to be baptized by him; and that I would not
believe them, whom I saw daily, yea, them who were present and
had instructed me at this time and before, as they said, and
why I would not believe my pastor, who daily preached the
Gospel. I replied [that I did not believe him] because he was a
liar, and that I had heard him preach that it could nowhere be
found written that Mary was a mother and a virgin. But (he
said) because their church taught it, therefore it had to be
believed. Therefore, said I, I will not hear him, since I had
read the contrary in Isaiah (7:14), and in Matthew and in other
places. Having thus heard lies proceed out of your mouth, I
after this heard neither you nor any other, and I hope by the
grace of the Lord I never shall." He said, "No." I said, "Yes, and I offer my body to the rack, against yours." But
he had no desire for it, and said, "What! should I go to the rack? You assert that our church
is not good, because we are not blameless; are you blameless?
There are such of your people that have committed murder,
because men would not believe them, nay, would not adhere to
their doctrine." I said, "Did you see this in me, or anything
else that is unseemly? I am here in the hands of the judges,
that they punish me for it." Ronse said, "We know nothing of
this kind of you." I said, "Then don't tell me what another</p>

</div><div id="544"> 

<p>does, nor considers me bad on account of the misdeeds of
others. No one is to bear, the burden of another; you are not
to bear mine, nor I yours. The soul that sinneth, it shall
die." Gal. 6:5; Exekiel 18:20.</p>

<p>Much more yet was said by them, but it is not worth-while to
write it. They also said that Christ had said that the scribes
and the Pharisees sat in Moses' seat, and that He had commanded
us to do after their commandments, but not after their works;
therefore, said they, do what we advise you, but do not after
our works, since Christ teaches this. Matthew 23:1, 2. I
asked, "Who did Christ say sat in Moses' seat?" <i>Ans.</i> "The
Pharisees." I asked again, "Does this Scripture belong to
<i>you?" Ans.</i> "Yes." I said, "Then you confess that you are
of their generation?"</p>

<p>Then Sir Cornelis, the parish priest, asked me why I did not
believe in one article of the Roman church. I doubtless
believed that Christ was' crucified, which the Roman church
also believes, which was certainly an article; and why I
believed that Matthew's Gospel was gospel, which was nowhere
written [he also said that]he would show me that Paul 'wrote
before the evangelists. I then said, "Show me that Paul wrote before Matthew." Sir Cornelis
said, "What have you to do with that?" I replied, "Should I have
nothing to do with it? my life and soul are at stake, according
to what you say." Sir Cornelis said, "He is overcome." I
said, "Be silent, you are not worthy of being spoken to, and see
that you do not say in my absence, that you overcame me, or
that I have the devil in me, or condemn me among the simple
people, and deceive them still more." Then Ronse said, "You are
damned, if you remain so." I said, "Why?" Ronse replied, "Because
you believe not." I said, "I do believe, and I adhere so firmly to my faith, that I
would rather go into the fire, than transgress a single
point."</p>

<p>Much more took place which would be too long to write.
Finally I was led back into prison, where two shackles were put
on me. I said, "I am ready, not only to suffer myself to be
shackled, but also to die the most ignominious death for the
name of the Lord." Acts 21:13.</p>

<p>On Monday Polet and the fat-monger came, and asked me how it
was with me. I told them that it had never been as well, -for
which I praised the Lord. They said that they were very glad of
it. Polet then said, "Joos, how can your cause and your church
be good-the Germans have a congregation, and the English have
one; but where are the members of your congregation? You alone
are not a church. Let us hear whether you are also a flock, and
who your members are." Then said I five or six times, "Get thee
behind me, and depart from me, Satan;" whereupon they both ran
away. Then I said, "Now you speak; at the judgment another shall
speak." Thus I saw them no more. I have heard that I am to be
severely tortured; for they think to obtain from me all the
particulars; but I trust the Lord, that He will keep my lips.
Hence, pray the Lord for me, that He will succor me, for they
thirst for much blood; but they can do no more than the Lord
permits them. Therefore I commend myself into the hands of the
Lord; and anything you may hear which is not in this letter,
regard as lies. In token of the truth I hope to seal this
letter with my blood. To this end may God give His grace, that
His name may be praised thereby.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER LETTER OR CONFESSION OF JOOS KINDT</h2> 

<p class="c3">To the praise of the Father.</p>

<p>I, Joos Kindt, imprisoned for the testimony in Jesus Christ,
entreat and admonish all dear friends, and all dear brethren
and sisters in the Lord, with the grace of the Father, the Son,
and the Holy Ghost, entreating by this grace, that they not
only heed or live according to my entreaty or admonition, but
that each (as I hope by the help of God) will heed the warning
of the Lord, and that each endeavor to amend his sinful life,
which I doubt not everyone does who fears the Lord with all his
heart; for the Scripture says, "He that feareth the Lord will do
good; yea, the fear of God is the beginning of wisdom." Sir.
15:1; 1:14. Since then the fear of God guides' us to virtue,
let us fear the Lord; for Christ Jesus requires this of us with
His blessed lips, when He says, "Fear not them which kill the
body, but are not able to kill the soul; but fear him which.
after he hath killed, hath power to cast soul and body into
eternal damnation." Matt. 10:28. Therefore I admonish you with
these words, and not with them alone, but with the whole sum of
the Scriptures, that each will strive to keep them (Luke
12:28); for Christ says, "Therefore whosoever heareth these
sayings of mine, and doeth them, I will liken him unto a wise
man, which built his house upon a rock; and the rain descended,
and the floods came, and the winds blew, and beat upon that
house; and it fell not: for it was founded upon a rock. And
every one that heareth these sayings of mine, and doeth them
not, shall be likened unto a foolish man, which built his house
upon the sand: and the rain descended, and the floods came, and
the wind blew, and beat upon that house; and it fell: and great
was the fall of it." Matt. 7:24-27.</p>

<p>Therefore, let everyone strive to give diligence to take
heed to himself, and to redeem the perilous time; for Paul
says, "Redeem the time, because the days are evil." Eph. 5:16.
Hence, make good use of the time, and exhort one another; for
necessity demands it; and let each arm himself well, even as
Paul admonishes us, "For we wrestle not against flesh and
blood." Eph. 6:12. Paul was right when he taught this. I well
experience it now. The Lord be praised, who assists me so
faithfully with these weapons, and, even as He promised to give
us a mouth to speak, when we should be brought before such, has
now opened my mouth, praise to Him, so</p>

</div><div id="545"> 

<p>that through the grace of the Lord I valiantly defend myself
with the Word of my Lord, and have manfully resisted my enemies
five times, not only my enemies, but the enemies of the cross
of Christ, as you will hear further.</p>

<p>Know, that on the afternoon of the day called St. Thomas, in
Babel, as I was lying in the cell I have always occupied, I saw
and heard that carnal and worldly lords came into the prison,
and also the chief bailiff. The servants then came and said, "Joos, come out." Then said I in my heart, "O Lord, open thou
my lips; and my mouth shall shew forth thy praise." Ps. 51:15.
With this I came in before them. Then Ronse and Polet both
lifted their caps, and said, "Joos, God. greet you," and nodded
their heads to me. I also lifted my cap, saying, "I esteem God
worthy of such greeting, yea, and more, I am ready to give back
these members-which He has given me through His gracefor His
name and to His praise; I deem the Lord worthy of so much; for
He has deemed us of sufficient value in His sight to die a
better death for us." Then the inquisitors said, "Joos, have you
not yet considered the matter? Will you not yet desist?" I
said, "Yes, always from doing evil. Why did you not ask me this,
when I yet ran in wickedness, and practiced all manner of
unrighteousness?" They replied, "You could have gone and heard
the sermons." They also inquired concerning my faith, which I
freely confessed. Then they said, "Speak to us, and tell us
whether you have not yet considered the matter." I said, "I will
not speak to you; for you are not of God; how should I believe
in you? Christ died for me; in this I believe; but you would
not, be willing to die for me; neither this dean nor that
(there were two deans present, Ronse and Olymaecker); neither
this curate nor that, would be willing to die for me. I am
imprisoned for my life; set me free and die for me." Ans."Who
teaches this?" I said, "Christ. He says: 'The good shepherd
loves his sheep, and gives his life for his sheep.' John 10:11.
You say that I shall be damned, if I persist in my purpose."
Ronse said, "Yes." I said further, "It is surprising, then, that
you should kill me; seeing, therefore, that I hold a purpose
for which I shall be damned; let me go until I exchange it for
a better." <i>Ans.</i> "We will leave you.""Yes," said I,"and
deliver me over." Matt. 27:2. Polet said, "Paul delivered some into the hands of the devil." I Cor..
5:5. I said, "So do you also; you have damned me; hence, be
satisfied, without delivering me into the hands of the judges.
Paul did not do so, nor did Christ teach it in Matt. 28 and
Mark 16, where He says: 'Go, and preach the gospel to every
creature.' Christ says not: 'Them that will 'not believe you,
shut into cells, or put great fetters on their legs.' Did they
all believe Christ, who heard Him preach? Did all believe the
apostles, who heard them?" Rom. 10:16. <i>Ans."No."
Joos.</i> "Were they put to death, then, who did not believe the
apostles." <i>Ans.</i> "No.""How comes it then, that the
apostles did not do this, and that you, who say that you are
vice regents of the apostles, dare put us to death? even
admitting that we were evil, as you say, but you have a better
opinion of us, than you say?" Polet said'"That I will tell
you</p>

<p>have you not read how Elijah put to death the priests of
Baal!" I said, "Yes; and this is just what is wanting yet to
subdue you; for you serve Baal even more than they did, and you
carouse and banquet with Jezebel much more than they did?"
<i>Ans.</i> "What does that concern you? You are always looking
to our works." I said, "Christ has taught me to know the tree by
the fruit, and says that a corrupt tree cannot bear good fruit,
nor a good tree evil fruit," etc. And I further said, "Since your works are not good, I do not believe you to be
good." <i>Ques.</i> "Are you good?" <i>Joos.</i> "You do not hear
me say this; there is none good but God alone, and though we
were to say that we are good, which we do not, you, on the
other hand, say that we are evil, and this for the reason you
told me when we were in the hall of justice, namely, that when
men will not believe us, we kill them." <i>Ronse."I</i> say
this yet." <i>Joos.</i> "Where did you see this in me; since you
say that I taught the people? did I kill any ore or hurt a
single hair, on account of my doctrine, which you say I teach
as an opinion?" Am."We do not know anything of such a character
of you." Joos."But I know such things of you; you burn or
murder those who will not adhere to your false worship. You
have justly judged yourselves in this matter." II Samuel 12:7.
<i>Ans.</i> "This brings us no further; let us dispute about the
faith?" <i>Joos."I will</i> not dispute here alone." Then they
said, "Do you acknowledge yourself vanquished?" and would have
delivered me to the judges, had I said, yes. I replied, "No; wherein have you overcome me? I have said it not once,
but fifty times: Show me a better way, with the word of the
Gospel, and I will renounce."</p>

<p>Ans."Let us begin then." Joos."Very well, before the hall of
justice, near a big fire, and the one that is overcome shall be
cast into it." Am."This will not be granted you." The
under-bailiff then said, "You seek to make disturbance,"
Joos."You have made it by apprehending me; if you had let me
work, Kortrijck would not be in the condition it is in now; it
was not in such a state for seven years." Polet."You will not
be taken there, and this for the reason that you may not spread
your poison." Joos."You ought to come before the hall of
justice, and the more people present, the. better, for if I
have the lies, and you the truth-axe you ashamed of the truth
before the people? Take me there, and show me that I am in the
wrong, and you will stop the mouths of the people, and when you
have overcome me, say: 'This is the man who has taught contrary
to the Christian faith; we now prove to him with the
Scriptures, that he is in the wrong,' and then throw me into
the fire, and the people will be edified. If you will not do
this, you are not willing that the people should know the</p>

</div><div id="546"> 

<p>truth." <i>Rouse."You will</i> not be brought thither to
speak; when you are brought there, speaking on your part will
be prevented." Joos."Why? the people have their five senses,
and he that hath five senses, will hear whether I speak good or
evil." <i>Rouse."You will</i> be prevented from speaking
there." Joos."Do it then; put me boldly into a bag, and smother
me by night, so that no one will see it; if He sees it, who
searches the hearts and reins, enough people see it; and He
will see it, and avenge Himself; I leave it to Him, for I am
ready any way, to put off this flesh, whether in the fire or in
the water, before the hall of justice or here in this fire (the
fire on the hearth); it is not big enough, make it bigger."</p>

<p>They then again proposed' to me to dispute, and said that
they were sent from God, and appointed His vice regents. I
said, "This is not so; for you have bought your benefices, or
they have been given you, or you have gained them by serving;
but those whom God has sent, from the beginning of the world,
have been sent differently." They said that they would prove it
to me by the Scriptures, that they were sent. I said, "Prove
it?" Am."This is it, that to Peter the key was given, and he
was pope, and it was given to him and his successors."
Joos."Show me, that anything is said there about
<i>successors?" Ans.</i> "This will be shown you." Joos."Show me
then?" Then Ronse read from a Testament, Matt. 16, from the
place where Christ asks, "Whom do men say that I, the Son of
man, am?" to where He says, "I will give unto thee the keys;"
but there was nothing said about successors. He then said, "You
have heard it, have you not, Joos? it is so long: I would read
further, but it is too long a task?" Joos."I desire that you
read on." <i>Rouse.</i> "How far?" Joos."To where it speaks
about successors." <i>Rouse."You</i> have heard that he says:
'Upon this rock I will build my church.' Hence it is founded
upon St. Peter, and he was pope." Joos."Christ is the
foundation, as Paul says (I Cor. 3:11): 'Other foundation can
no man lay than that is laid, which is Jesus Christ.' But Peter
is not the foundation, nor did Christ found the church upon
Peter, but upon the confession of his faith where he confesses:
'I confess that thou art the Christ, the Son of the living
God;' therefore, Christ is the foundation. But," said I,"let us
speak about the key; you skip from the key to the church; you
say that I run from one thing to another, stick to your text
yourselves, and show me, as you have asserted, that Christ
says: 'I give unto thee the key, and unto thy successors.'"
They replied, "We shall show it to you. But listen, it is this,"
said Polet, and produced a sophism. I said, "You cannot satisfy
me with arguments; show it to me in the book?" Then Ronse
said, "We know it by heart, and so do you; hear us repeat it
from memory?" I said, "Read it?" They replied, "Is it not the same whether we read or speak it? Joos, hear
what I shall tell you?" I said, "Telling will not satisfy
me."</p>

<p>When they would not read it, I addressed the chief bailiff,
and Roegaergijs, and said, "My lords, I demand that you assist
me in this matter, and compel them to read it; else I say that
you are tyrants and not judges." Then said they,"Read it to
him." Thereupon they read Matt. 16. Ronse read, and when he
could not find it, he turned as white as a sheet, and then
said, "It is not here." Polet said, "These words are not there,
but the sense is in Matt. 28." He then read, "I am with you
alway, even unto the end of the world." I said, "This is not where he says: 'I give unto thee the keys, and
unto thy successors."' <i>Polet.</i> "Would you have just these
very words; they are not here; why make so much ado about it?"
Joos."No, but because you will say you will show it to me."
<i>Rouse.</i> "Be silent, you are not worthy to speak."
Joos."Why should I keep silence, when you with your false
mandates have brought about, that neither proctor, nor
attorney, nor friend may speak for us; if you are not willing
to let me speak, you ought to have let me remain in my cell;
but I shall keep silence neither for you nor any one else; I am
neither a thief, nor a murderer, nor a ravisher of women; why
should I forbear speaking? I shall defend myself, because my
life is at stake, and not keep silence as long as I can move my
tongue; but do you N. keep silent; you are not worthy to speak,
you soul murderers, you enemies of the cross of Christ." Again
they proposed to me to dispute. I said, "Before the hall of
justice, but not here." Am."You will not be taken there."
Joos."Well then, do as you please; I have confessed my faith to
you when I first came here, and I have told you more than fifty
times before, and tell you again, that I think nothing of all
your trumpery, nor of a single point held by the Roman church."
<i>Rouse.</i> "Do you think nothing of the sacrament? Let us
hear what you think of it?" Joos."An idol, a little flour; and
if I had your oil, I would grease my shoes with it."
<i>Rouse.</i> "We can hear that you are audacious enough."</p>

<p>Then a contention arose, and they thought to fall upon me;
but I defended myself valiantly with the Word of the Lord, as
behooves a servant who loves his master. And the Lord gave me
such a mouth to speak, that for three hours I did not make one
assertion, which they were able to refute. Then the incarnation
was made the subject of discussion, which they would carry out
to the dead letter. Matt. 1: The book of the generation of
Jesus Christ, the son of David. Thereupon I said that in Matt.
22:41 it was written, "Then Christ asked the scribes and the
Pharisees: 'What think ye of Christ? whose son is he? They say
unto him the son of David. He saith unto them, How then doth
David in spirit call him Lord, saying, The Lord said unto my
Lord, Sit thou on my right hand, till I make thine enemies thy
footstool? If David then call him Lord, how is he his son? And
no man was able to answer him a word."' I also told them of the
figure of Melchisedec, and the last chapter of</p>

</div><div id="547"> 

<p>Revelation, that He is the root of David; which they would
not hear, but adhered to their dead text.</p>

<p>When I perceived that they would not acknowledge their
error, I said, "If you want to speak of the incarnation, or of
any other matter of the faith, come before the city hall." Then
Polet said, "Who should judge there, who is right or wrong?" I
said, "These good lords." Polet said"They do not understand the
Scriptures." I said"They understand them well enough for you,
to dispute here, or in the hall of justice; hence they ought
also to understand them, to dispute in the city hall. And if
they do not understand the Scriptures, then they ought to feel
ashamed that they are judges in this matter, when they do not
understand the Scriptures." So much was said, that as much
paper as I could hold in my hand would not suffice me to write
down all their sophistry. I commend all dear friends, and all
brethren and sisters in the Lord, into His hands, and entreat
them all, to arm themselves wisely, for it is necessary; and
when they come as far as I am, not to engage in disputation,
for, if it were possible, they would draw us away from the
truth. Know, that I am of such good cheer, that it would be
impossible for me to describe the joy or gladness I have, and I
hope that the seal of this letter will be the putting off of my
body. To this end, lnay the Lord give me His grace, that His
name may be glorified thereby; for I seek nothing but the glory
of the Lord. Nothing more; I commend you to the Lord, and to
the Word of His grace. Pray the Lord for me; I will gladly pray
Him for you also.</p>

<p class="c8">They say that Christ by origin is David's Son; If
He be David s Son, He's not the Father's Son: For no one has
two Fathers 'twere unnatural; He's God's only Son, and not
creatural.</p><br />

<h1>ELIZABETH AND HADEWIJK; OF WHOM THE FORMER WAS
DROWNED AT LEEUWARDEN, AND THE LATTER ESCAPED DEATH, IN THE
YEAR OF OUR LORD, 1549</h1>

<p>This Elizabeth was of a noble family, and had in her youth
been put by her parents into the convent of Tieng, near Lier
near East Friesia, there to learn various arts, and also the
Latin language. There she accidently, or rather through the
direction of God, came into possession of a Latin Testament, by
the constant reading of which and meditating upon it she
obtained so much knowledge of the will or God, that she became
distressed on account of her state of life, and seeing no
chance to alter her life according to the rule of said Word in
the convent, much less under the parental roof, she resolved,
after much conflict and reflection, secretly to escape from the
convent, trusting to the fatherly providence of Almighty God
for help and guidance. To this end, she made an agreement with
a milkmaid of the convent, that she should change clothes with
her, and thus assist her to escape from the convent early in
the morning, in the guise of a milkmaid; which having been
accomplished, she first came to Lier, and without her knowing
it, to a certain house, in which there lived Anabaptists, who
upon learning her circumstances and condition, took her in, and
instructed her still more fully in the way of God, and, after
some time, fearing that search might be made for Elizabeth,
brought her to Leeuwarden, and there left her with a pious
sister of the Anabaptistic church, named Hadewijk, with whom
she was afterward apprehended.</p>

<p>This Hadewijk was married to a certain drummer of the
company quartered at Leeuwarden, who, having neither to go
marching, nor to mount guard, etc., worked in a certain shop to
gain a livelihood for his wife and children. There was working
there together with him a very pious Anabaptist brother* who at
that time was put in bonds and condemned to death for the sake
of his religion. Said company having been ordered to the place
of execution, when this pious brother was to be offered up, to
form a circle around him, to prevent an uproar, the aforesaid
drummer objected to serve in. his capacity as a drummer at that
time and under such circumstances which he also indicated to
his wife Hadewijk, who opposed him in this matter, and advised
him to proceed in the discharge of his duty. This then he
resolved to do; but as he was first also to get himself
partially in. toxicated, in order to feel less of compassion
for the innocently doomed man, but this intoxication, instead
of depriving him of his sense of compassion, only increased it,
and he became so bold that he told the spectators of the piety
and virtues of this martyr so well known to him, why he was so
maltreated, how wickedly the authorities, instigated by the
clergy, acted in this matter, and that it were better to
apprehend and treat after this manner, wicked men,
whoremongers, adulterers, unrighteous, and such like, of whom
there were plenty in the city, yea, even among the clergy. Some
laughed, others laid it to heart; some said, "The drummer is drunk;" others, "He is crazy," etc. But when
he had become sober and was himself again, he reflected on what
he had done, and what in all probability he now had to expect,
and resolved to leave the city of Leeuwarden, his company, and
the Roman church. H'e entreated his wife to go with him, but
she could not approve of it, and after his departure, never
knew whither he had gone. But coming to reflection some time
after, she inquired after the Anabaptists, found opportunity to
attend the exhortations, embraced the faith, and was not only
baptized upon her faith, but also suffered herself to be
apprehended together with Elizabeth. Being confined in a
separate room from Elizabeth, it was announced to her that on
the following day she should be examined and have to defend
herself in a considerable</p>

<br /><cite>*It is supposed that this was probably Sikke
Snijder.</cite> 

</div><div id="549"> 

<p>number of articles, which caused her exceeding great
distress and anxiety of heart, especially since she could
neither read nor write, and was more pious and willing than
experienced. Hence, she earnestly importuned God, that-the
exceeding good and man-loving Father would be pleased to look
with compassion upon her, His poor handmaiden, whose inability
and unfitness He knew best, and not to try her above her
ability, but to deliver and save -her by His divine hand,
whereupon a voice came to her while she was thus engaged in
prayer, exclaiming, "Hadewijk I" Looking up and around her, and
seeing no one, she continued in her fervent prayer. A second
time she heard the voice, but again seeing no one, she
persevered in her supplications until the same voice said to
her the third time, "Hadewi jk, I tell thee, come out!" Seeing
the door open, she put on her hood, and went out of the prison,
but did not know where to conceal herself. She went
provisionally into- the church, where she soon heard those who
came there relate that the gates of the city had been closed
because a certain Anabaptist woman had escaped from prison, no
one knowing how, there being great reason to suspect sorcery in
the matter, for which reason very diligent search was being
made for her everywhere. Just as she left the church she heard
the drummer in the street exclaim that whoever could point out
her person, should receive one hundred guilders, but whoever
concealed her should forfeit one hundred and fifty guilders,
which increased her fear more and more. Trusting herself by no
means into her own house, and yet compelled to seek shelter
somewhere, she went to the house of her former master and
mistress, whom she, before she was married, had served very
faithfully for sometime, and who therefore thought much of her.
These she entreated whether they would not please give her
shelter in this distress, but they refused to do it; whereupon
she went away as in despair, and came before the priest's
house, where lived a certain half-witted fellow, well-known to
her, whom she, as he was standing at the door, addressed,
asking him to conceal her; which he did, taking her up into the
garret, and providing her with food and drink; but in the night
he came to her, and made indecent advances to her. Here the
embarrassment was greater than ever; she had to deal with one
who was strong of body and passions, with whom reasoning had
little influence; if she made an outcry her life was in danger;
she therefore lifted up her soul, and betook herself to her
Redeemer, and called upon Him for help in this great distress,
and also entreated this fellow to desist from so evil a deed,
because it would be adultery and she had a husband; and
adulterers and adulteresses had to burn forever in hell;
whereupon he left her in peace and went away, saying, "The jade
is too wise in the Scriptures; I have no chance with her." The
next day he went to the Zuypmarket, to Hadewijk's
brother-in-law, who daily brought buttermilk there for sale,
and told him that he had, unknown to anyone, concealed his
sister-in-law in the priest's house, and advised him to come
with his boat to the back stairs of the priest's house, there
to take her into the boat, and carry her out of the city
through the floodgate, which he did, and thus this lamb
Hadewijk, through the miraculous hand of God, escaped the claws
of the ravening wolves, fled to Emden, and lived the remainder
of her life in the meetinghouses of the Anabaptists, where she
fell asleep in the Lord.</p>

<p>Remmeltje Wubbers, from whom I have this account, heard it
only frequently from her parents and others, but also from the
woman who attended Hadewijk in her last sickness, to whom
Hadewijk related it with her own lips.</p>

<h2>OF A PIOUS BROTHER WHO WAS PUT TO DEATH FOR<br />
THE WORD OF GOD, IN THE CITY OF VUREN<br />
IN FLANDERS, A. D. 1553</h2> 

<p>About the year 1553, there was put to death with the sword,
in the city of Vuren, in Flanders, for the testimony of Jesus,
a God-fearing, pious brother, who had to endure many severe
conflicts from the papists, the adversaries of the truth; but
as a valiant hero of Christ he would not fear them that kill
the body, but sought much rather to please Him who after this
temporal death has power also to cast into hell, into
everlasting fire, where the worm dieth not, and the fire is not
quenched. He therefore comforted his sorrowful wife, who was
pregnant, and whom he loved dearly, with the Word of God,
fearing that adversity was in store for her; that she should
not regard the torments inflicted upon him for the Word of God.
They sentenced him to be executed with the sword; hence he took
affectionate leave from all his brethren, and, as a humble
lamb, following the footsteps of his Leader Jesus, ascended the
scaffold; but the evening wolves, which let nothing remain
until the morning, by which and other fruits they may be known,
retained their wolfish nature, so that they killed this friend
of God with seven cruel blows, and finally sawed off his head,
so that through great sorrow many a tear was shed by the people
who were present and witnessed this martyrdom. His poor,
pregnant wife lamented greatly, so that she died with her fruit
from excess of grief. Many witnessed this heinous murder,
perpetrated by the bloodthirsty; but the great and faithful
God, who regards the sufferings of His own, as though the apple
of His eye had been touched, will avenge this in due time. O
how will these bloodthirsty men excuse themselves, when the
chief Shepherd shall appear in the clouds, and require an
account of this matter! But those faithful heroes and
adventurers of God, who did not dare deprive their Creator of
His divine honor, but would serve Him rightly according to His
Word, and gave their lives therefor, they have the promise from
the mouth of Jesus, that He will confess them before His Father
in heaven, that it is the Father's good</p>

</div><div id="549"> 

<p>pleasure to give this little flock His glorious kingdom, and
that all who here suffer with Christ for righteousness' sake,
shall rejoice forever with God. Matt. 10:32; Luke 12:8, 32;
Matt. 5:10.</p>

<p>Concerning this, read hymn in the old hymnbook.</p>

<h2>PIETER WITSES, A MASON, STRANGLED AT THE<br />
STAKE, AT LEEUWARDEN, AND HIS CONFESSION WHILE IMPRISONED IN THAT CITY<br />
WHERE HE LAID DOWN HIS LIFE FOR<br />
THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS, IN<br />
THE YEAR 1553</h2> 

<p><i>In Questions and Answers</i></p>

<p><i>Question.</i> "What is your name?" <i>Answer.</i> "Pieter
Witses." <i>Ques.</i> "How old are you?"
<i>Ans.</i> "Twenty-seven years." <i>Ques.</i> "When were you to
confession last?" <i>Ans."I</i> confess everyday, and
acknowledge that I am a sinner." <i>Ques.</i> "What do you think
of the sacrament?" <i>Ans."I</i> esteem it highly."
<i>Ques.</i> "What do you think of the sacrament which the
priest gives on Easter?" <i>Ans.</i> "Nothing."
<i>Ques.</i> "Christ said: 'Take, eat; this is my flesh."'
<i>Ans.</i> "It is true; but He spake it to those who were
obedient to Him." <i>Ques.</i> "Are you also rebaptized?"
<i>Ans."I</i> know of no rebaptism; I was baptized once, and
that according to the teaching of God." <i>Ques.</i> "How long
ago?" <i>Ans.</i> "About a year and a half."</p>

<p>Then Pieter was put into a dungeon, and having been there
for about an hour, was again taken before the lords, and asked
anew, "Pieter, are you seduced? will you not suffer yourself to
be instructed?" <i>Ans.</i> "Yes, gladly; he that rejects
reproof and instruction is miserable. Prov. 10:17. Take a
Testament, and instruct me." <i>Ques.</i> "We are no teachers;
will you not suffer yourself to be instructed by priests?"
<i>Ans.</i> "God is the best priest; He will instruct me, and to
this I shall adhere by the grace of God." <i>Ques.</i> "Some
vagabond has been preaching to you." They further said that
they had read in the Old Testament, that many children were
baptized. Pieter replied, "I have read nothing about this; I
have read that Christ commanded to baptize believers. Matthew
28:19; Mark 16:16; that it was practiced by the apostles, Acts
2:38; and that Peter taught: 'Repent, and be baptized every one
of you in the name of Jesus Christ, and ye shall receive the
gift of the Holy Ghost. For the promise is unto you, and to
your children,"' etc. He also quoted John 3.</p>

<p>Then they said, "Pieter, you are deceived; are your brethren
also thus minded?" He replied, "What do I know about my brethren? I can speak of what God
has given me; that I know." He further quoted the words of
Christ, where He says</p>

<p>Go into all the world; preach and teach: he that believeth
and is baptized shall be saved. Mark 16:16. Also, that Christ
came to John at the Jordan, to be baptized of him, in order
that He might fulfill all righteousness for us, to be an
example, that weshould follow His steps. Matt. 3:13, 15; I Pet.
2 21. And after Christ's suffering the apostles, who were His
body and church, practiced it.</p>

<p>Concerning their supper, he confessed, that he thought
nothing at all of it. They admonished him with the Gospel,
which he regarded as all right, but not as having been said
with reference to their church; for Christ, said he, said to
His apostles, "Take, eat; this is my body, which is broken for
you." Also the cup, "Drink ye all of it; for this is the cup of
the new testament in my blood, which is shed for many for the
remission of sins." MatthevA, 26:26-28.</p>

<p>Christians are to observe it, as Paul teaches the
Corinthians, where it is clearly expressed. I Cor. 10:16. They
said that the supper which they eat and drink was true flesh
and blood, and asked me whether we did not also thus eat and
drink it. I replied, "Christ said: 'The flesh profiteth nothing,
eaten outwardly; but the word is spirit and life.' John 6:63.
And our church is not without the body of Christ."</p>

<h2>A BRIEF ADMONITION FROM PIETER WITSES</h2> 

<p>Christ said, Matt. 24:5, "Many shall come in my name, saying,
I am Christ; and shall deceive many;" which words are true; for
when you confess your sins to them, they forgive them, as they
say. This they have carried on since the Gospel has been hid,
and they do it yet. Paul also foretold this to Timothy (I Tim.
4:2; II Tim. 3:2); Christ says, Matt. 7:15, "Beware of false
prophets," etc., and John also writes much concerning this, in
the tenth chapter of his Gospel. Also, Jude and Peter. But
these are as natural brute beasts, made to be taken and
destroyed; they speak evil of the things that they understand
not. Again: They hatch cockatrice' eggs, and weave the spider's
web. Isa. 59:5. They daub the wall with untempered mortar, and
put pillows under men's arms. Ezek. 13:10, 18. And although the
church flee into caves, the confession abides forever. They
cannot resist; for they deny the power of God; they love the
broad way; the cross of Christ is foolishness to them. II Tim.
3:5; I Cor. 1:18.</p>

<p>Concerning these, God gave me something to speak. I perceive
nothing but the abomination of desolation of which the prophet
Daniel speaks, and of which Christ also says that He will
scarcely find faith upon earth. Dan. 9:27; Luke 18:8. But be of
good cheer; and fight in faith, well knowing that it is the
word of truth, which cannot fail. Upon this, through the grace
of Christ, I have built and He will keep me, and I will daily
trust in Him, knowing and feeling confident that there is no
power, might, or dominion in heaven or on earth, save only of
Him. Hence, give diligent heed; prove yourselves in your
consciences, as to what you seek-every work will be made
manifest. Read and examine diligently for it greatly concerns
us all. The authorities can by no torturing seduce one, but
the</p>

</div><div id="550"> 

<p>erring spirits come with deceitful snares, in the name of
Christ; but we are sufficiently warned. Matt. 7:21; I Tim. 4:1;
II Tim. 3:5; Tit. 1:10; Rom. 16:17; Phil. 3; I I Pet. 2; Jude
1.</p>

<p>My dear friends, they thus assail me with questions as much
as they can. Give the young and simple hearts good instruction
regarding the Lord's Supper, for I know what happens to me. If
the house is truly built upon the cornerstone, it cannot fall.
Let everyone take good heed; for the time of trial is at hand,
and we know that it will not always stop at mere words; for
Christ Himself suffered. If they laid their hands on His
blessed body, they will do the same to us. Let us arm ourselves
with the Word of God; for the Word of God is the true door. It
is the bread of life. The time of weeping is come; hence our
deliverance is nigh. Let us pray for grace. The time is come
that judgment must begin at the house of God; and if it first
begin at us, what shall the end be of them that believe not in
the Word? I Pet. 4:17. My brethren, do not forget us poor sheep
in your prayers, for us who for the truth are kept in bonds by
the authorities. Care for them that live among you; for Christ
will say, "I was naked, and you clothed me," etc. Matt. 25</p>

<p>36. Pray and watch; the abomination of desolation is drawing
nigh; cease not, but be of good courage, for greater is He that
is in us, than he that is in the world. I John 4:4. 1
affectionately desire, that you be diligent, lest you be
deceived, for the times now are perilous. Know, that whenever I
was brought before them, I kept down my own thoughts, and
prayed Almighty God, that He would open my mouth according to
His good pleasure, and believe it freely, He gave abundant
comfort to the humble. They assented to me in many things, when
I spoke with them with a meek spirit by the grace of God. My,
dear friends receive it kindly. May the Lord preserve you from
wicked deceivers. Pray and watch, the times are perilous; and
do not forget us in your prayers, and visit us sometimes, it is
very edifying; may the Lord preserve us all.</p>

<h2>PIETER WITSES TO HIS WIFE</h2> 

<p>My dear chosen wife, abide in God, and mingle not with the
wicked; for if the righteous draw back, my soul shall have no
pleasure in him, says the Lord. John 2:28; Ps. 1:1; Heb. 10:38.
The time of my departure seems to be nigh; may it take place
with God. When the hour of parting comes, fear not, but guard
your lips. My dear wife, abide in the grace of God given
you.</p>

<h2>DAVID AND LEVINA, A. D. 1554</h2> 

<p>In the year 1554, there was imprisoned at Ghent, in
Flanders, for following Christ and living according to God's
commandments, a young brother named David, who, when examined,
freely confessed his faith. Being asked what he thought of the
sacrament, David said, that he considered it nothing else than
idolatry. Then a priest said tohim, "Friend, you err greatly,
that you so readily confess your faith, for it will cost you
your life, if you do not change your mind in time." Thereupon
David sweetly replied, "I am ready to shed my blood for the name
of Christ, even though it should be here in this place; for God
is my salvation, who will keep me, and preserve me from all
evil." The priest said, "It will not be as good as though you
were put to death secretly here in this place; but you will be
burnt publicly at the stake, for an everlasting reproach." He
was then brought into the court, where he was condemned to
death, and his sentence was read, namely, that he had fallen
from the true faith into heresy, and was therefore, according
to the imperial edict, sentenced to be strangled and burned.
David said, "No one will ever be able to prove by the
Scriptures, that the faith for which I must now die is
heresy."</p>

<p>There was also sentenced to death with him a woman named
Levina, who rather forsook, not only her six dear children, but
also her temporal life, than her dear Lord and Bridegroom Jesus
Christ. Arriving on the scaffold, David attempted to kneel down
in order to offer up his prayer to God, but he was prevented,
and they were immediately driven away to the stakes, standing
at which, David said to Levina, "Rejoice, dear sister; for what
we suffer here is not to be compared with the eternal good that
awaits us." Rom. 8:18. When about to offer up their sacrifice,
both exclaimed, "Father, into thy hands do we commend our spirits." A little
bag of gunpowder was tied to each of them, whereupon they were
strangled and burned. But there happened a manifest miracle of
God; for though they were completely burned, and the fire was
as good as extinguished, David was seen to move his head, so
that the people exclaimed, "He still lives." The executioner
seized the fork, and thrust it three times into his bowels, so
that the blood flowed out; yet even after this he was still
seen to move, hence, the executioner threw a chain around his
neck, and bound him to the stake, and thus broke his neck.</p>

<p>Thus these two valiantly fought their way through, firmly
trusting in God, who did not let them be confounded, since they
had firmly built their building upon the only foundation;
wherefore they shall never perish, but abide forever.</p>

<h2>WILLIAM VAN LOUVAIN, A. D. 1554</h2> 

<p>In the year 1554, there was put to death for the testimony
of the truth, at Ghent, in Flanders, a pious witness of God,
named William Van Louvain, the grandfather of Jan Doom. He did
not suffer for any crime or heresy, but only for the testimony
of the truth, in a good conscience, having renounced the
Babylonian whore, together with her lovers, and all her false
worship, and united himself with Christ, following Him with the
whole heart in the regeneration, and through faith, overcoming
this world with all that is therein, whereby</p>

</div><div id="551"> 

<p>he finally, through grace, obtained the end of the faith,
that is, eternal salvation, through Christ Jesus. .</p>

<h2>PIETER WITH THE LAME FOOT, JAN DROOGHSCHEERDER, HANS RORDUERWERCKER, AND<br />
FRANS SWEERDTVEGER, A. D. 1555</h2> 

<p>In the year 1555, the young nobleman Jan van Immerseele
having become Margrave, four brethren were apprehended at
Antwerp, for the testimony of the truth, namely, Pieter with
the lame foot, Jan Drooghscheerder, Hans Borduerwercker, and
Frans Sweerdtveger, who, as they valiantly adhered to it, and
could not be brought to apostatize, were finally sentenced to
death, and had to lay down their lives publicly in the
marketplace, for the name of the Lord, for which He will well
reward them.</p>

<h2>TANNEKEN VAN DER LEYEN, A. D. 1555</h2> 

<p>In said year there was also apprehended at Antwerp, a young
maiden from Ghent, named Tanneken van der Leyen, who loved God
and His truth more than all that was in the world; hence, since
she preferred the doctrine of Christ and His apostles to all
human doctrine, and immovably adhered to it, she was condemned
to death, and drowned in the Scheldt.</p>

<h2>BARTHOLOMEW THE POTTER, A; D.. 1555</h2> 

<p>Bartholomew the potter, who was a vessel of honor in the
house of God (II Tim. 2:20), was also apprehended for his
faith, at Antwerp, examined, much afflicted, and finally,
sentence having been pronounced, publicly put to death in the
market place, as a pious witness of Jesus Christ.</p>

<h2>ROMMEKEN PUT TO DEATH, A. D. 1555</h2> 

<p>About this time, also Rommeken, a noted child of God,
publicly declared and sealed with his blood the divine truth,
in the marketplace at Antwerp; wherefore Christ will also
declare and confess him before His Father in heaven.</p>

<h2>HANS PICHNER, OF SAL, A. D. 1555</h2> 

<p>In the year 1555, -Hans Pichner of Sal, was apprehended at
Vorst, in Etschland or Vintschgau, and taken by the beadles to
Schanters, before the judge, who was a dreadful tyrant and of a
very fierce disposition. He immediately examined John,
rigorously questioning him, that he should betray the one that
had lodged him; but when he would not do it, he was speedily
tortured from the first day. All their torturing, however, was
in vain, and they were greatly vexed that they could obtain no
information from him. Several times he was stripped, and, while
being tortured, left suspended by cords for several hours, yea,
he was so stretched, that he could not stand upon his feet,
ortake a single step, nor bring his hand to his mouth to eat;
yet he was not to be seduced, but remained steadfast in the
Lord. After this, they bound him hand and foot, and kept him
imprisoned in a dark dungeon for more than six months. They
also brought to him many men of worldly erudition (if
peradventure they might be able to draw him away from his
faith), as priests and monks, also some noblemen, who mightily
assailed him for two days and one whole night; but they were
put to shame; for he convinced them with the truth, and was not
to be intimidated.</p>

<p>After this, they sentenced him to .death, and led him out to
the place of execution, where he exhorted the people, who had
gathered in great numbers, to repentance. Finally he was placed
with his back, in a sitting posture, against a block of wood,
and thus beheaded; for they had racked and tortured him so
lamentably that he was unable to kneel. But he nevertheless
adhered firmly to the Lord and His truth; therefore God kept
him in the hour of his temptation, and he shall henceforth not
be hurt of the second death; he shall not see the eternal fire,
but shall enter into an innumerable company of angels, to the
supper and marriage of the Lamb, clothed in linen clean and
white; where will be exceeding joy forever and ever. Rev. 3:10;
2:11; Heb. 12:22; Rev. 3:20.</p>

<h2>CHRISTIAN EXECUTED WITH THE SWORD, IN THE<br />
YEAR 1555</h2> 

<p>In the year 1555, a brother named Christian was apprehended,
in Bavaria, and taken to Worms, and although he had been in the
church only a short time, he nevertheless faithfully adhered to
the divine truth, which he had embraced and confessed, and
firmly kept until death what he had promised God in the
covenant of his Christian baptism; and, through divine power
and strength, testified to the faith with his blood. He was
executed with the sword, at Worms. Thus he fought a good fight
even unto death, strove for the truth, safely finished his
course, and refused to be led astray, preferring a valiant
death to a shameful life. Hence, there is promised to him the
crown of righteousness, which the Lord, at the last day, will
give him, and unto all them that love His appearing. II Tim:
4:8.</p>

<h2>DIGNA PIETERS, AFTER ENDURING MUCH AFFLICTION, PUT INTO A BAG AND DROWNED, IN PUTTOX TOWER, AT DORDRECHT, FOR THE<br />
TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, ON THE<br />
23RD OF NOVEMBER, 1555</h2> 

<p>A. D. 1555, unholy hands were laid, at Dordrecht, in
Holland, upon several of the saints of God, of whom, among
others, there is mentioned by name, a God-fearing woman, named
Digna Pieters, who being a citizeness of said city, had at the
same time a citizenship also in the spiritual city of God, that
is, in the church of Jesus Christ on earth, yea, also, because
of her integrity,</p>

</div><div id="552"> 

<p>in the new and heavenly Jerusalem, which is above, in which,
and of which, she was regenerated by the Word of truth.</p>

<p>On account of the faith which she had in common with the
dear friends and children of God, she was imprisoned, and
severely proceeded against in various ways, for the purpose of
causing her to apostatize from the faith. But as they could
make no progress in the matter, since she was founded upon the
immovable cornerstone, that is, Christ Jesus, they resolved to
put an end to her citizenship, and at the same time also to her
life. Thereupon it followed that the chamber of justice,
through the instrumentality of the bench of judges and the
council of said city, with public striking of the bell,
disfranchised her, before the steps leading up to the city
hall, on the 17th of November of said year, to be further dealt
with as the lords of said chamber should find or judge
proper.</p>

<p>Concerning this, there remains, though almost obliterated by
age, the following act in the book of records of said city, in
the keeping of the secretary there:</p>

<p><i>Actum per Campanam,* the</i> 17th of Nov, 1555. Whereas
Digna Pieters, citizeness of this city, at present a prisoner,
has without pain of iron bonds, openly confessed before the
bench of judges, and the council of this city, to have been
rebaptized, etc.,** also to have held conventicles, contrary to
the faith, holy sacraments, and other services and ceremonies
of the holy church; therefore, the council of the aforesaid
city has disfranchised said Digna Pieters, and disfranchises
her by these presents, further to be proceeded against, as the
aforesaid council, according to the exigency and circumstances
of the case, shall deem proper.</p>

<p>Thereupon follows in said book, how the chamber of justice
proceeded against her, six days afterwards, in regard to which
the following words are found.</p>

<p class="c18">Digna Pieters drowned</p>

<p>Today, the 23rd of November, A. D. 1555, Digna Pieters, by
virtue of a. certain sentence given and pronounced*** by the.
bench of judges, and the council of this city, (by the mouth of
Wouter Barthouts, judge in the law) was put into a bag, and
drowned, in Puttox Tower.</p>

<p>Extracted from the book of records of the city of Dordrecht,
commenced the last day of October, 1554, and concluded the 16th
of June, 1573.</p>

<p>This was the end of this valiant heroine of Jesus, who,
though she was secretly murdered in a tower, like Joris Wippe
and others, will hereafter, in the great day of the Lord, be
brought openly to light; then it shall be seen what difference
there will be between those who did this, and her who suffered
it, since everyone shall receive in his body according to that
he hath done, whether it be good or bad. II Cor. 5:10.</p>

<p>This Puttox Tower, where this martyrdom took place, stood
close by the gate of the <i>Grootehooft</i> of the city of
Dordrecht; but it afterwards fell by reason of great age,!!or
as a signal warning of God on account of this murder. In its
place stands now a house, in the gable of which these words are
carved in hard stone:</p>

<p class="c3">"Through the falling of Puttox-Tower</p>

<p class="c3">I was built, and stand to this hour."</p>

<p>As to the persons who in said year administered criminal (or
capital) justice, and, consequently, executed this work, they
were, according to John Beverwijck's history of the government
of the city of Dordrecht, the following: Adrian van Blyenbergh
Adriaenss, bailiff; and nine judges as follows: Jacob
Adriaenss; Philips van Beverwijck Ogierss; Maerten Schrevel
Dirckss; Jacob Oem Sir Jacobss; Pieter Muys Jacobss; Schrevel
Sir Qckerss; Wouter Barthouts; Cornelis van Beveren Sir
Cl.aess; Wouter van Drenkwaert Sir Wilmss.</p>

<p>But whether all these judges, together with the bailiff,
concurred in the aforesaid sentence; or whether Wouter
Barthouts, who was present at her death, was the chief
instigator of this work, is not expressed; however, it seems
that the majority did not have much pleasure in it, since
Wouter Barthouts alone, as it seems, with the executioner and
the servants of justice, was present at the death of this
woman.</p>

<br /><cite>*"Actum per Campanam", i.e., done through the
bell (or striking of the bell).</cite> 

<br /><cite>*"And to hold pernicious views with regard to
baptism," etc., it seems to read here.</cite> 

<br /><cite>** Whether it was customary in the city at that
time, to read in court sentences of death passed in matters of
faith, we have not been able to ascertain.</cite> 

<h2>RENEWAL OF THE PREVIOUS BLOODY DECREES OF</h2> 

<h2>EMPEROR CHARLES V, AGAINST THE BAPTISTS</h2> 

<h2>OR SO-CALLED ANABAPTISTS, BY PHILIP II,</h2> 

<h2>KING OF SPAIN, A. D. 1556</h2> 

<p>Up to this time, Emperor Charles V was alone, or at least
chiefly responsible for the shedding of the blood of the saints
in the Netherlands, as also for the most cruel tyrannies which,
through the instrumentality of the Inquisition, and through
what followed afterwards, were inflicted upon them, by fire,
water, sword, and otherwise; but in this year, his son, Philip
II, King of Spain, following in his father's footsteps (instead
of lightening the constraint of conscience) caused all the
previous bloody and cruel decrees which his father had issued
against the so-called heretics, to be renewed and confirmed,
especially the most cruel decree published on the 25th of
September, 1550, the contents of which we have reserved until
the present time, but will now, as renewed A. D. 1556, adduce
here, however not with all its particulars, but only so far as
it was directed (principally) against the Anabaptists and their
doctrine.</p>

<p>In the book in which the prince of Orange, William I,
defends himself against the false charges, which his
adversaries sought unjustly to bring</p>

</div><div id="553"> 

<p>against him, printed <i>1569,</i> mention of this is made
<i>(cent;. 165, letter L. VI.),</i> in the following
words.</p>

<p><i>Of the ordinances and decrees made for all times,</i><br />
<i>and for general observance, and proclaimed</i><br />
<i>everywhere, from the 25th of September,</i><br />
<i>1550, and renewed and confirmed by</i><br />
<i>his Royal Majesty in the year 1556</i></p>

<p>We likewise forbid all lay persons, and others, to converse
or dispute concerning the holy Scriptures, whether openly or
secretly, especially in doubtful and difficult matters; or to
teach, expound or interpret the holy Scriptures to others,
unless they [who do so] be theologians and versed in divinity
and spiritual law, and approved by some notable university, or
others authorized thereto by the ordinary of the place; be it
well understood, however, that this is not to be regarded as
relating to those who simply and exclusively converse together
on the aforesaid holy Scriptures, adducing thereto the
expositions of holy and approved doctors; but to those who, in
order to seduce others, or to teach and instruct them in that
which is forbidden, maintain and teach, contrary to the
ordinances of our mother, the holy church, evil and false
propositions and doctrines, who are notoriously considered
heretics; or to preach, defend, allege or maintain, openly or
secretly, any doctrines of the aforementioned authors.</p>

<p>On pain, that if any be found to have acted contrary to any
of the above stated points, they shall be punished as seditious
persons, and disturbers of our realm and the common peace, and
be executed as such</p>

<p>Namely, the men with the sword, and the women buried alive;
that is, if they will not maintain or defend their errors; but
if they persist in their errors, opinions, or heresies, they
are to be executed with fire; and in every case all their
property is declared confiscated, and forfeited for our
benefit.</p>

<p>And as regards what we had ordained in our previous decrees
and our last ordinances, that from the day they had acted
contrary thereto, or had fallen into the aforesaid errors, they
should be disqualified from disposing of their property, and
that all alienations, gifts, cessions, sales, conveyances,
transfers, testaments, or last wills, made and executed by them
from said day on, should be null, invalid and void.</p>

<p>Again <i>(page 168): Since</i> many, from our aforesaid
countries, suspected of heresy, especially of the sect of the
Anabaptists, change their place of abode, to infect the simple
in places where their character is not known; we, in order to
guard against this, will, ordain, and decree, that none of the
inhabitants of our aforesaid Netherlands, of whatever state,
quality or condition he be, shall be admitted or received into
any city or village, of said countries, there to live, except
he brings with him a certificate from the parish priest of the
place where he last resided.</p>

<p>Which certificate he shall be obliged to show and deliver
into the hands of the principal officer of the city or village
where he intends to live; on pain that those who do not bring
such certificates shall not be admitted there to live.</p>

<p>And we charge the officers diligently to inform themselves
with regard to them, and to proceed therein as shall be proper,
without our aforesaid officers, or the particular lords, and
their officers, being permitted to grant such persons any pass
or safe conduct.</p>

<p>Again <i>(page 171): That</i> all who have knowledge of any
that are tainted with heresy, shall be bound, immediately and
without delay to accuse, report, and indicate them to all
spiritual judges, deputies of the bishops, and other proper
persons.</p>

<p>Likewise, if any be found to have acted contrary to these
our ordinances and prohibitions, showing himself to be
infected, or favorer of the heretics, or committing any act
contrary to these our ordinances and prohibitions, especially
anything tending to scandal or sedition, that those who have
knowledge of them shall be bound, immediately to report it to
our proctors, or their substitutes and commissaries, or to the
officers of the place where such tainted favorers or offenders
shall live; and this on pain of arbitrary punishment.</p>

<p>In like manner, they shall be bound, if they know the place
where any of such heretics keep or shelter themselves, to
indicate it to the officer of said place, on pain of being
considered, as stated before, favorers, entertainers and
adherents of heresy, and punished with the same punishment as
would be inflicted upon the heretic or offender, if he should
be apprehended.</p>

<p>And in order that the aforesaid judges and officers, who
shall apprehend said heretics, Anabaptists, and transgressors
of our aforesaid ordinances and prohibitions, may have no
reason, under the pretence that the punishments seem too great
and severe, and were only decreed to deter the delinquents
(Anabaptists), and offenders, to dissemble with them, their
accomplices and favorers, or to punish them less than they have
deserved, as has been found to have frequently been done
hereto-fore; -therefore, we will that those whom they know to
have acted contrary to these ordinances, or who have kept in
their possession, printed, sold, distributed, or published any
heretical scandalous books, writings . . . or have contravened
the points already indicated, or to be stated hereafter, or
some of them, shall be actually punished and corrected with the
punishments set forth above.</p>

<p>We forbid all our judges, justiciaries and officers, as also
our vassals and subjects, temporal lords, who exercise high
justice, and their officers, in any wise to alter, mitigate or
change the aforesaid punishments (those ordained to be
inflicted with the sword, earth, or fire); but; on having taken
cognizance of such contravention plainly do declare and decree
the aforesaid punishments, pursuant to these present
ordinances, on pain of being severely</p>

</div><div id="554"> 

<p>punished; unless that in some particular case, said judges,
because of great and important considerations, should find
difficulty as to the exact execution of the punishment decreed
against the transgressor by our aforesaid ordinances.</p>

<p>In which case they may nevertheless not mitigate the
punishment of their own accord; but shall be bound to carry or
send the criminal process, faithfully closed and sealed, to the
sovereign or provincial council, under whose jurisdiction they
shall belong, there to be examined and deliberated on as to
whether any alteration or mitigation of the aforesaid
punishment is proper or not.</p>

<p>And if our aforesaid councilors find, that in good justice,
according to right and reason (in regard to which we charge
their consciences), any mitigation or alteration is proper, in
such a case they may advise them by writing, and send it all to
said judges and officers, that the latter may finish and
terminate said process in accordance with it.</p>

<p>We command them to do nothing less, and enjoin them very
expressly and strictly, on pain of being arbitrarily corrected
and punished, not to make use of said consultations without
great and important reasons, but be governed, as much as they
can, by the contents of these present ordinances.</p>

<p>Extracted from the great book of decrees of Ghent
in which are collected all the decrees, mandates, and
ordinances of Emperor Charles h, and of King Philip II; and
cited by William I, Prince of Orange, in his defense against
his adversaries, edition 1569, from p. 165-174 inclusive.</p>

<h2>AUGUSTINE THE BAKER, A. D. <i>1556</i></h2> 

<p>A. D. <i>1556,</i> or thereabouts, there was in Beverwijk, a
brother named Augustine, a baker by trade, who had forsaken the
world, and been baptized upon his faith, according to the
ordinance of Christ, which the papists could not endure. There
was at that time a burgomaster who was very bitter, and filled
with perverted zeal, who sometimes said that he would furnish
the peat and wood to burn Augustine. The bailiff had said that
he should not apprehend Augustine without previously warning
him; but he did not keep his word; for he came upon a time when
Augustine was at his work, kneading dough. Perceiving him,
Augustine attempted to flee, but was instantly seized by his
pursuers, and cast into prison; and as he was a man who was
much beloved, it greatly grieved the bailiff's wife, who said
to her husband, "O you murderer, what have you done!" but all in
vain, he had to follow his Lord Jesus as a lamb is led to the
slaughter. As he steadfastly adhered to his faith, they passed
a cruel sentence on him, namely that he should be tied to a
ladder, and thus cast alive into the fire, and burnt. On his
way to death, he saw one of his acquaintances, to whom he
said, "Farewell, Joost Cornelissen." The latter, prompted by his
good opinion of him, replied in a friendlymanner, "I hope that
we shall hereafter be together forever;" whereupon said
burgomaster replied out of a heart judging with partiality, "He
will not get to the place whither you will go; but he goes from
this fire into the eternal." Thereupon Augustine said to the
burgomaster, "I cite you to appear within three days before the
judgment seat of God." As soon as the execution was over, the
burgomaster was instantly smitten with a raging sickness, and
continually cried with a guilty conscience, "Peat and wood, peat
and wood!" so that it was terrible to hear; and before the
three days had expired, he died; which was a great sign of they
all-seeing eye of God, who would not suffer such cruelty to go
unpunished, as an example to all those who from perverse
blindness should commit such deeds. For it is often seen that
those who think to do God service by exercising tyrannical
cruelty over the pious, come to a bad end; for the apostle
James also says that they shall have judgment without mercy
that have shown no mercy. May the Lord enlighten those who are
in such blindness.</p>

<h2>FRANCIJNTGEN, GRIETGEN, AND MAEYKEN DOORNAERTS, A. D. <i>1556</i></h2> 

<p>At Belle, in Flanders, three women were apprehended for the
testimony, of the truth, namely, an old woman named
Francijntgen, a young maiden named Grietgen, and niece to the
former, and another young maiden, named Maeyken Doornaerts, all
of whom suffered much tribulation and torment. The old woman,
when they wanted to torture her naked, said to the
lords, "Remember that you were born of women; therefore, do not
put me to shame;" by which she obtained leave to keep on her
shift on the rack. Great pains were taken to draw the young
maiden Grietgen from her faith, since she was still very young;
but it was all in vain, for she would much rather expect
eternal joy for this temporal pain or suffering, than purchase
this brief and transient pleasure with everlasting
suffering.</p>

<p>The other young maiden, Maeyken Doornaerts, also had to lie
naked on the rack, and when they could by no pain or suffering
cause her to apostatize from her faith, they began to accost
her with asking her, whether she was not ashamed to lie there
so nude. She replied, "I did not place myself here naked; but
you, who inflict this misery and disgrace upon me who am
innocent, shall hereafter have to suffer eternal shame and pain
for it." And though she was tortured to such a degree, that her
blood flowed down by the rack, she nevertheless, through the
grace of God, who always strengthens His own, remained
steadfast in the faith. Thereupon all three were sentenced to
death, and burnt. Standing at the stake, Maeyken Doornaerts
said, "This is the hour for which I have greatly longed, that it
might put an end to all my tribulation." Thus these three
heroines, valiantly fought their way through, suffering all
this, be-</p>

</div><div id="555"> 

<p>cause they were baptized upon their faith (according to the
teaching of Christ), and thenceforth sought, in all simplicity,
to serve and please the living God more than mortal men; for
which they also expect the joyful crown of eternal and
imperishable life.</p>

<h2>ABRAHAM PUT TO DEATH A. D. 1556</h2> 

<p>In the year 1556 there was at Antwerp a very pious and
God-fearing brother named Abraham, who was apprehended for his
faith, and, after a bold confession, and. steadfast adherence
to the same, condemned to death, and thus publicly in the
marketplace,. offered up an acceptable sacrifice for God,
sealing the truth with his blood.</p>

<h2>JAN DE KUDSE, A. D. 1556</h2> 

<p>Shortly after, also Jan de Kudse, an ardent lover of God,
who had likewise been apprehended for the truth, from which he
would not depart; meekly suffered death as an innocent lamb of
Christ, in the marketplace at Antwerp, in order to follow his
Lord; and thus violently entered through the strait gate into
the kingdom of God.</p>

<br />

<h1>CONFESSION OF CLAES DE PRAET WHO FOR THIS TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, AND HIS WORD WAS IMPRISONED AND BURNT AT GHENT, AND LAID DOWN HIS LIFE AS A BURNT OFFERING UNTO THE LORD A. D. 1556</h1>

<p>Grace and peace from God our Father, and the Lord Jesus
Christ, be with you all, my most beloved brethren and sisters
in the Lord.</p>

<p>Blessed be the God and Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, who
hath blessed us with all spiritual blessings in heavenly places
in Christ; according as He hath chosen us in Him before the
foundation of the world, that we should be holy and without
blame before Him in love. Let everyone among you walk worthy of
the vocation wherewith he is called so that Satan may not
torment you in your trial; and diligently exhort one another in
love; for I would willingly write you an exhortation, but the
time is not convenient for it, because I am closely watched by
the jailer, who stands in great fear of the dean. Nevertheless,
I am greatly inclined to write you something about my
examination, and the malice and forged lies of the priest, by
which they think to condemn me, but God be praised, who helps
me gain the victory. I write you this, if, haply some that are
yet young may be edified thereby.</p>

<p>At first after I was imprisoned, until the sixth day I was
in great sorrow; my. heart was weighed down and heavy, and my
flesh feared greatly. I said to myself, "Now I must undergo this
and many other conflicts;" I thought of wife and children; and
Satan went round me to devour me, with many strange temptations
which it would take too tong to relate. On the sixth day, in
the forenoon,the jailer came and called me out of the place
where I was confined, saying, "Claes, come down, and follow me;
and he led the way. My heart kindled within me with joy to the
Lord my God; so that all my trouble and anxiety was driven from
me, as dust is swept from the street. Then thought I, "O
gracious God! now I flnd that Thou art faithful to Thy promise.
Heb. 10:23. Lord, direct now my speech, as Thou hast promised."
Heb. 10:23; Luke 21:14. He then led me into a room, where sat
the chief judge with two other judges, the bailiff, and a man
with a long beard, who had a large book before him, in which to
write. They regarded me very intently, when I entered the room,
and I did them great reverence, and bade all of them peace.
Rom. 13:7. The jailer placed a chair for me, and said, "Claes,
sit down here; it is so ordered." I sat down with good cheer,
the heart lifted up to the Lord my God, forgetful of myself and
the things that are in this world.</p>

<p>Then they said, "Cover your head." I said"It is not proper
now." The bailiff asked me"What is your name!" I replied, "Claes
de Praet." Then said he, "Write this, and born in this city."
The clerk then asked me, "Were you born here?" I replied, "I know
nothing to the contrary." <i>Bailiff.</i> "Where have you been
so long, Claes? The last time you were away from home so long?"
<i>Claes.</i> "In Emderland." <i>Bailif.</i> "What did you do
there?" Claes."I tried to learn whether I could not buy or
sell, or do something, .by which to earn my bread."
<i>Bailiff.</i> "Yes, and. to see the brethren, I well
perceive." <i>Claes.</i> "Yes, sir bailiff."
<i>Bailiff.</i> "Yes, Claes, have you received any other baptism
than the one you received in your infancy, when you were
christened?" <i>Claes."I</i> don't remember so far back."
<i>Bailiff.</i> "Have you received a baptism which you
remember?" <i>Claes.</i> "Yes, sir bailiff." <i>Bailiff."How</i>
long ago?" <i>Claes.</i> "About four years." Then they were all
greatly astonished. The bailiff asked me once more, "How long
did you say?" Then the other judge said, "About four years."
Then the bailiff looked at me very sharply, and asked who they
were, that had intercourse with me, and which of my brethren
were also baptized. I replied, "It is not our way to ask each other: Where are you from? or
where do you live? or what is your name? or what do you do?"
<i>Bailiff."You</i> don't want to know it?" <i>Claes.</i> "No,
sir .bailiff." <i>Bailiff.</i> "You do it, so as not to bring
any one into trouble?" <i>Claes.</i> "Yes, sir bailiff;for we
well know that our blood is much sought, and the Lord has
permitted us to be as wise as serpents." Prov. 1:11; Matt.
10:16. Then the bailiff snarled at me, and they talked much
Latin with each other.</p>

<p>The bailiff then asked, "Where was it that you received your
baptism?" <i>Claes.</i> "At Antwerp." <i>Bailiff.</i> "Where
there?" <i>Claes.</i> "Between St. George's gate and the Koeper
gate." <i>Bailiff.</i> "In what house?" <i>Claes.</i> "In a
small, new house." <i>Bailiff,</i> "What trade was carried on in
it?" Claes.</p>

</div><div id="556"> 
<p>"I saw no trade carried on there." <i>Bailiff.</i> "Yea,
Claes, who was present? there must have been witnesses present
to testify that you were a brother?" <i>Claes.</i> "There
were:three or four persons present who lived in the house, and
the one who brought me there." <i>Bailiff.</i> "Who was it that
brought you there?" <i>Claes.</i> "It was a young man."
<i>Bailiff.</i> "Where was he from?" <i>Claes."I</i> did not ask
him." <i>Bailiff.</i> "How .many were baptized with <i>you?"
Claes.</i> "Three of us." <i>Bailiff.</i> "Where were they from?"
<i>Claes."I</i> did not ask them." <i>Bailif.</i> "What trade
did they follow?" <i>Claes.</i> "One was a journeyman mason, it
seemed to me." <i>Bailiff.</i> "How did he that brought you
there know where to find you?"' <i>Claes.</i> "He set the day
when he would meet me at the Koeper gate." <i>Bailiff.'</i>
'.'How did you know that the baptizer was in the city?"
<i>Claes."I</i> had made inquiries at different times, while
out trafficking, and thus heard that he was there."
<i>Bailiff.</i> "Where did you hear that he was there?" Then
said the chief judge, "They know all their people."
<i>Bailiff."Do</i> they still live in the house where you were
baptized, or don't you know this either?" <i>Claes.</i> "Shortly
after they were all driven from the house." Bailiff."Then you
can't tell us anything about it, can you?" Claes."One went to
England; another was burnt, and where the rest went to I don't
know." <i>Bailiff.</i> "What kind of man was he who baptized
you?" <i>Claes.</i> "He appeared to me to be a blameless man."
<i>Bailiff.</i> "Yes, Claes, how do you know that the man that
baptized you was blameless?" Then one of the judges said, "He
said it appeared to him that he was blameless."</p>

<p>The chief judge then said, "These ,people also preach, do
they not?" Then the bailiff remarked to him, "We used to ask all
these questions, but we do it no longer." And they rang the
bell for .the jailer to come and take me away. This they put on
record.</p>

<p>The clerk asked me what persons from Ghent I had left at
Emden. I would give him no answer, because it was not his
business to ask. The judges then said to me, "Claes, we will
send you men that will tech you the true faith."
<i>Claes."I</i> trust I have the true faith, and if they will
confirm me therein, they will be welcome; but if they want to
draw me away from it, I don't want them." Then they said,
urgently."Claes, hear them; hear them always." I then heartily
thanked the judges and the bailiff, since they had been
molested with me. The jailer's servant then told me to go
above, and I went. I felt very gloomy, because they had not
asked me concerning my faith. Two servants who hid stood at the
door and listened, came up above to me, and tormented me with
many things and said, "Poor fellow, that you are, to give your
life for it, and leave your wife and children in want; it is
not right for you to break your marriage, since God Himself has
instituted it." I said, "I do not break my marriage, nor does my wife; but they are
to blame for it, who take me from mywife; they may well take
heed what they do." They said I should speak that which they
wanted to hear. I replied, "God did not teach me this;" and
admonished them, to beware of staining their hands with such
blood. I spoke to them earnestly, and they went away, and asked
God to grant me my greatest happiness. Then I sat there alone,
and Satan came to tempt me, saying within, "Poor man, are you
here for the sake of your faith? The lords don't ask you
concerning your faith, but regarding the baptism you received
from such and such a man, as you well know." And he tormented
me with all that he could produce, doing his very best to cast
me down. Then thought I;"O thou wicked tempter, thou murderer,
I well feel that thou art the same that tormented Peter, and of
whom he warned us." I Pet. 5:8. And I fled to God, and
commenced a hymn, singing joyfully, and became glad and happy
that I had fought through this storm, James 5:13. I was there
about ten weeks.</p>

<p>Then the jailer came, and said, "Claes, come hither; here are
two royston crows;" and enjoined me much to think of my wife
and children. I said, "I think of them enough; but Christ has said: 'Whosoever
will not forsake father and mother, sister and brother, wife,
child, yea, his own. life, for my name's sake, is not worthy of
me.'"Matthew 10:37; Luke 14:26. He said, "It is true, i f one
can do it." He then led me into a room where were two Jacobines
. They took off their caps, and I did the same with mine. They
bade me good evening, and I them. The one asked me, "What is
your name, my friend?" I answered, "Claes," and said, "What is
your name?" He replied, "Brother Peter de Backer," and told me,
that he had been at the chief judge's, and that the latter had
requested that he should come and instruct me in the true
faith. I said, "This I have received from God."
<i>Ques.</i> "What is your faith?" Claes."I believe only in
Christ Jesus, that He is the living and true Son of God, and
that there is no other salvation either in heaven or on earth."
<i>Ques."Is</i> there nothing else to be believed? What becomes
of the mother, the holy church, in whom we must believe?"
Claes."Do you know which is the holy church?" <i>Ques.</i> "Do
you know it, let me hear it?" <i>Claes." I</i> ask you; for you
speak of it?" <i>Ans.</i> "The same which was it from the time
of Christ, and of the apostles, and which the apostles
maintained and still maintain." <i>Claes.</i> "What one is
that?" <i>Ans.</i> "The mother, the holy Roman church?"
<i>Claes."Is</i> this the apostolic church?" <i>Ans.</i> "Yes."
<i>Claes.</i> "Did the apostles thus maintain it?"
<i>Ans.</i> "Yes, just as we, neither less nor more."
<i>Claes.</i> "Did the apostles read mass?" <i>Ans.</i> Yes."
<i>Claes.</i> "Where is this written?" <i>Ans."I will</i> show
you;" and he referred me to the Corinthians, where Paul speaks
of the supper. I Cor. 11:20. I said, "He speaks here of the
breaking of bread; but did he read mass as you do?"
<i>Ans.</i> "Yes, neither less nor more than we</p>

</div><div id="557"> 

<p>do." <i>Clcres.</i> "Did the apostles persecute and maintain
their church with fire and sword, as you do?" <i>Ans.</i> "Yes,
they shed blood, betrayed and killed." <i>Cllaes.</i> "Peter
shed the blood of Malchus, and Judas betrayed; but where did
they kill any one?" <i>Ans.</i> "Peter smote Ananias and
Sapphira with the sword of his mouth, so that they fell down
dead." And he laughed and held up his finger. Then said I, "It
seems to me you belong to those of whom Paul speaks (II Tim.
3:5) , whom we are to flee; for your folly does not remain hid,
but becomes manifest before men; for you sit and mock and
loiter, and show plainly, that you are men of corrupt minds,
ever learning, and never able to come to the knowledge of the
truth." And I reproved him much. They wanted to prolong the
conversation much longer, and question me with regard to
baptism, the incarnation of Christ, and other articles of
faith; but I had resolved not to dispute with them, without
judges being present; but to confess as I confessed above
before them. When they perceived that I would hear them no
longer, and was on the point of leaving, one of them said, "O
Claes, how lamentably you have gone astray; and yet I love you
so much; I would that you were of our mind with me, and that I
might give my body to be burned. O poor man, I will pray for
you, and have others pray for you, when I preach."
<i>Claes."I</i> don't want you to pray for me, nor that you
have others pray for me; for your prayer is vain, and is not
heard by God, so long as you people continue in your
wickedness." <i>Ans.</i> "Perhaps there are one or two in the
whole number, that are good." <i>Claes.</i> "Begone; for you
only want to talk." Then he went away laughing, saying, "I shall
have you prayed for, whether you desire it or not, for Z like
you well; and I will come again."</p>

<p>About two weeks afterwards, there came two of the same band;
the one was a large fat man, who had much talk in him; the
other was very fierce and captious in his remarks, and wanted
much to engage me in a disputation; but I would not enter into
any, only that I put many questions to them, as I had done to
the others, and made them expose their wickedness themselves;
for very many prisoners had come and stationed themselves back
under the window of the room, and behind the door, to listen;
which I well knew; hence I asked the more, because the one was
so loquacious, which was owing to him having imbibed too
much.</p>

<p>Having been confined about seven weeks, I was called down
and led into a room, where sat the Dean of Ronse, with his
clerk, and another person. The dean told me to be seated, and I
took a seat forward at the table, beside him, whereupon he gave
me a long lecture, to which I listened. He said that it was
impossible to please God without faith, and that he that did
not believe was damned. Finally he asked me, "Why did you allow
yourself to be thus seduced, and led into error, and apostatize
from the holy church?" I replied, "Since it iswritten that it is
impossible to please God without faith, I was diligent in
examining the faith, and asking God to strengthen me in it,
through His grace and mercy. This He has done abundantly, and I
want to keep it faithfully unto His praise, and not to forsake
it on account of any suffering, nor for aught that is in the
world."</p>

<p><i>Dean.."You</i> think you have the faith, but you have
departed from it. And that you people are so bold and of good
cheer even unto death, is all owing to the devil, who can
transform himself into an angel of light. Hence, when you read
the Scriptures, you were instructed by some poor, simple
tradesman, who taught you the same according to his reason;
therefore you are now deceived. You should have let those teach
you, who have received the true doctrine, the ministers of the
holy church, that is, the pastors." <i>Claes.</i> "Are they the
ones that have received the true doctrine?" <i>Dean.</i> "Yes."
<i>Claes.</i> "Why, then, do they live the life of devils; as
may be seen?" <i>Dean.</i> "What does that concern you? It is
written, Matt. 23: 'Do after their commandments, but not after
their works."' <i>Claes.</i> "Are you, then, the scribes and
Pharisees, of whom Matthew has written?" <i>Dean.</i> "Yes."
<i>Claes.</i> "Then all the woes come upon you, that follow
further on, in said chapter." <i>Dean."No,</i> they do
not."</p>

<p>We had much additional discussion yet, with reference to
this. He would have liked to engage me in a disputation
concerning the articles of faith; but I would not enter into
one, confining myself to the asking of such questions. The man
was willing in speaking, and very mild, and wanted attention to
be given to what he said, and also gave good attention himself.
And I thought, "I have heard so long and so much of this man,
that he persecutes and troubles the church so greatly; I must
see now, how he will prove it with the Scriptures, when I speak
with him; for I don't know that I have ever seen him."</p>

<p>I asked him, where he found it written, that he should run
so bloodthirstily after innocent blood, which no one could
accuse of any crime. <i>Dean.</i> "My friend, I don't run after
or seek the blood of any one." <i>Claes.</i> "You send out your
servants for that purpose." <i>Dean."I</i> do not, my friend."
<i>Claes.</i> "Do you persecute no one, then?" <i>Dean.</i> "No,
my friend." <i>Claes.</i> "Have you no mandates either, by which
you cause it to be done?" <i>Dean.</i> "No, my friend."
<i>Claes."You</i> have certainly delivered to the law my fellow
brethren who fell into your hands, and remained steadfast in
the faith; this has been manifest to all the world."
<i>Dean."I</i> don't do this, my friend." <i>Claes.</i> "Why do
you come and sit with the judges, and have so much to say, if
you don't concern yourself about the matter? One by hearing you
talk, would think you had no hand in it." <i>Dean."No, my</i>
friend;" and he rubbed his hands together. <i>Claes.</i> "Who
then does it?" <i>Dean.</i> "The secular, or the lord who has
received the sword."</p>

</div><div id="559"> 

<p>We had yet much more discussion on this subject, so that he
did not know which way to turn. He asked from Deut. 17:12, upon
which passage he founded it, that the priests had the
authority, etc. I told him that, that was under the law of
revenge, but that now we were under the law of grace. Exodus
21:23; Rom. 6:14. And I asked him, how he dared do something
which the Lord had forbidden, namely, concerning the tares,
Matt. 13:30, that both the wheat and the tares should be
suffered to grow together. I asked him which of the two I was,
that I must certainly be either the wheat or the tares?
<i>Dean."You</i> are the tares." <i>Claes.</i> "Why don't you
let me grow until the day of harvest?" <i>Dean.</i> "What the
lord of the field commanded his servants was for the reason,
that they should not spoil the wheat by pulling up the tares.
But I can go along the edges, and here and there pluck out a
handful or two, yea, sometimes, six, eight, ten, twelve, yea,
now and then a hundred or two, without spoiling the wheat."
<i>Claes.</i> "Then you are wiser than the servants of the
Lord." <i>Dean."I</i> can certainly well do this."
<i>Cldes.</i> "When I held with the priests and walked according
to your will, was I a good blade?" <i>Dean.</i> "Yes."
<i>Claes.</i> "Am I now a bad blade?" <i>Dean.</i> "Yes."
<i>Claes.</i> "Well, then, if I am a bad blade, according to
your own words, you have yourselves spoiled me, and others, who
have gone before, by your plucking, and yet you say that you
can do it so well. O you miserable plucker, that you are, when
you plucked the four blades of Lier, in the Verle place, five
years ago, when you stood on the scaffold, and preached, and
the people said, "Antichrist preaches." It was then that I began
to investigate, what faith it was for which those people died
so boldly there; and I examined the scripture which you quoted
from II Tim. 2 and 3. And I found that I had to separate from
such a people as is plainly enough spoken of there, with regard
to you; and I separated from such a multitude, and do so yet.
What becomes now of you and your plucking, poor plucker; the
more you pluck, the more you spoil; according to your own
words, it were better if you would stop. And I told him a great
deal from the Scriptures, so that he was ashamed, and knew not
what to answer.</p>

<p>At last he said, "Those were not my people; it seems to me,
that you have searched the Scriptures well; where did you hold
your church?" <i>Claes.</i> "Where Christ and His apostles held
it, behind hedges, in the woods, in the field, on mountains, on
the seacoast, sometimes in houses, or wherever they found a
place." Luke 6:17; Matt. 5:2; Acts 1:13. <i>Dean.</i> "Christ
preached openly (Jno. 18:20); but you people cannot be found,
where you are, or who you are." <i>Claes.</i> "It is certainly a
great cross for you, that you cannot find them, nor know them,
and that you people are known so well. I hope that God will not
permit you to find them; but though you sometimes cut into the
branches, I trust that you will not cut off the vine.
ChristJesus, the living Son of God, will keep and feed His
branches, so that they may bring forth fruit, although you now
do your very best to tear and destroy them."</p>

<p>We spoke much more yet of the church, and of his people,
whom he exalted greatly. I asked him many questions in regard
to whether infants that died without baptism were damned. He
said, "Yes." I asked him whether the apostles had read mass and
persecuted. And he replied"Yes" to everything, so that it
seemed to me that the more I asked him, the more he lied; and I
reproved him for the lies in which I found him. He said, "They
are not lies, but it is the truth; but you don't believe what
is told you; you remain hardened and unbelieving." And
according to his words, it seemed that the life of the apostles
was not a whit different from that of the priests. He said, "As
regards your life, your walk or conversation is good towards
all men, and you do unto your neighbor as you would have men do
unto you, and live in peace, love and unity with one another,
which is very good; and you assist each other in need and
distress, and lay down your lives for one another, which is
also very good, I can say nothing against it; and you expel
from your church them that live disorderly, as you expelled
Jelis of Aix-la-Chapelle, who led such a life, as I well know;
against this I have nothing to say, it is all well done; but of
what use is it to your people to have the life, if you have not
the faith? it is not able to save you." I replied, "We have also
the faith; but you don't understand it, or will not understand
it; but it will yet be revealed to you, in the last day of the
Lord, whom you have served." And I assailed him very
severely.</p>

<p>He rang the bell for the jailer to let him out. The latter
came into the room, and the dean rose to go. I thanked him much
that he had come here for my sake. He turned around and said, "I
should like to see you suffer yourself to be brought on the
right way; but you persist obstinately in your unbelief; you
are like your master." I asked, "Who is my master?" He
replied, "The devil." I assailed him with many Scriptures, in
order that he should come no more, and he went away ashamed,
because the jailer was present, and other prisoners, who came
running to the door. I had asked him for information concerning
Jelis, and he could tell me everything, which greatly
astonished me.</p>

<p>The third day after this, the jailer came once more for me,
and I went down very willingly. He directed me to go into a
certain room. When I entered it, there were sitting there the
chief judge with another judge, and a pastor or priest, who was
exceedingly bent upon examining our friends, and very
mordacious in his words, so that he could listen to nothing
that was said, without interrupting it. But one of the judges
had never been a judge before, and he constantly forbade him;
for he paid very close attention. When I entered the room, I
did the lords great reverence, and they did</p>

</div><div id="559"> 

<p>the same to me. I Pet. 2:17. I took a seat at the table, and
the priest made a lengthy harangue, as had the dean; I kept
silent till I was asked. When he had ended his sermon, he asked
me, "Why did you suffer yourself to be seduced so miserably from
the faith into error?" Claes."I have not been led into error,
but from error into the true Christian faith." Priest."What
then is your faith; let us hear?" Claes."I believe that Jesus
Christ is the true, living Son of God, and that there is no
other salvation either in heaven or on earth, either under it
or above it." Chief Judge."This we all likewise believe in our
church." The priest laughed, saying, "This I also preach; tell
us something else, and speak freely; for Christ said</p>

<p>'When you are brought before kings, and princes, and
magistrates, fear not what ye shall speak; for it shall be
given you in that same hour, of my heavenly Father, what ye
shall speak; yea, my spirit shall speak through your mouth.'
Matt. 10:19. Now, if you have received the Holy Spirit, speak
freely through the Holy Spirit." And the chief judge sat there
and kept nodding his head, and smiling, and saying, "Yes, yes,
Claes, yes;" before I could say a single word. The priest
continued instantly."Christ promised His church, that He would
be with them unto the end of the world. Matt. 28:20. And I can
find none among you that can tell me of a longer existence of
your church than about thirty years; for before that it did not
exist; or do you know of any books of your people, that are
older, then name them to us." Claes."Since Christ promised His
church, that He should be with her unto the end of the world, I
doubt not that He has been the preserver of His body, and is
yet, and will be as long as the world will endure, according to
His promise, Matt. 28: 20; Eph. 5:23. Although she was
sometimes extirpated in some countries, through bloodshed and
persecution, and through the false doctrine of the Roman
Empire, or otherwise; she was therefore not annihilated
throughout the world; for the world is great, and she could
linger in some corner of the world, and from one to the other,
without perishing utterly. And as to your asking me to name to
you any books of our church, the Bible is our book, which has
reigned in the church from of old." Priest."Is it big enough
for you people, and have you enough with one?" Claes."Yes; it
is too big yet for us." The priest laughed and said, "What
becomes then of all the books written from the time of the
apostles by learned men, who also received the Spirit of God,
as well as the apostles? have they all written in vain; as
Jerome, Gregory, Augustine, and Ambrose; these were certainly
good and virtuous men, were they not?" Cldes."Were these the
four pillars upon which your church is founded?" Priest."Yes."
Claes."I did not know them, only by hearsay; they were pious
scullions, if they founded your church as it yet is as may be
seen." The priest drew back, and said, "Why, why!" I
said, "Christdid not thus found His church, neither did Peter,
Paul, Stephen, and John; they rather received rods on the back,
stones on the head, and the sword in the neck, and so forth."
II Cor. 11:25; Acts 7:58; 12:2.</p>

<p>The priest was disconcerted, and said, "Tell us the truth
about your church; for no one knows where to find it; if it
were good, it would certainly come to the light; you people
have neither head nor authority, nor do you know one another;
this is a strange thing." Claes."Paul teaches us in his epistle
to the Ephesians, concerning the true church, which Christ has
presented to Himself, that it is glorious, holy and without
blemish, without spot or wrinkle; that they are baptized
together into one Spirit, and into one body, the head of which
is Christ, and are joined together as members of His body.
These have one Lord, one faith, one baptism, one God and
Father, of us all, who is through us all, and in us all. This
is the true temple of God, in which dwells the Spirit of God.
This church Christ has bought and redeemed with His blood."
Eph. 5:27; I Cor. 12:13; Eph. 4:5, 6; I Cor. 6:19, 20; I Pet.
1:19. Priest."Did not Christ redeem all men, but only these?"
Claes."It is written in divers places, that the unbelieving
shall be damned; how then will the death of Christ benefit
them? or what will it avail.them that Christ died? It is to be
feared that they will regret it, that Christ died. But those
who have believed in the Word of the Lord, and followed it,
they are the ones who will inherit the kingdom of heaven, and
triumph with the Lord on mount Zion, who have death, devil,
hell and the world under their feet, though the world in her
frenzy hastens to tear, devour and destroy them. If they were
of the world, the world would love them; but because they are
not of the world, therefore the world hates them, as Christ
said." John 15:19. <i>Priest.</i> "You people don't believe that
Christ is God and man." <i>Claes."I</i> believe that Christ is
true God and man." <i>Priest.</i> "Do you not believe that
Christ is man from Mary's flesh?" <i>Claes."No;</i> for if He
had become man from. Mary's natural flesh and blood, He must
have had His beginning with Mary; but it is written that He has
neither beginning of days, nor end of life. Heb. 7:3. And the
Word would not have become flesh, if He had assumed flesh from
Mary; nor would He have come in the flesh, as John declares;
but He would have come from the flesh, had He assumed it from
Mary. John 1:14; II John 7. And it is written: 'He that
confesseth not that Christ is come in the flesh, is that spirit
of antichrist.' I John 4:3. And if He were such a carnal man,
He could not have ascended to heaven; for it is written (I Cor.
15:50) that flesh and blood will not inherit the kingdom of
God." <i>Priest.</i> "Still, did not the angel Gabriel say to
Mary</p>

<p>'Thou shalt conceive and bring forth a son?'" Luke 1:31;
Isa. 7:14. <i>Claes.</i> "Well, understand the word rightly; for
he said: 'Thou shalt conceive, and bring forth;' now, what Mary
conceived,</p>

</div><div id="560"> 

<p>could not grow from her." Priest."What word became flesh?"
Claes."The same word of which John testifies to us, in his
first epistle, saying,"That which was from the beginning, which
we have heard, which we have seen with our eyes, which we have
looked upon, and our hands have handled, of the Word of life;
for the life was manifested. I John 1:1; John 9:37; 20:27. What
else do you want to know?"<br />
Priest."Where did Christ assume His flesh, in heaven, or on
earth?" Claes."That which I cannot prove with Scriptures, I
will not say." Priest."Don't you believe anything but what is
written?" Claes."No." Priest."You certainly believe that you
have a soul; but what do you know as to what your soul is, how
large, how long, how wide, or of what color it is?" Claes."What
does that concern me? my salvation does not lie in that."
Priest."You believe that the dead will rise; but how can any
one comprehend that what has perished will rise and become
alive?" Claes."I am well satisfied with the explanation Paul
has written," I Cor. 15. Priest."Do you not .believe that Mary
is mother and virgin?" Claes."Yes." The priest smote his hand
upon the table, drew himself up to his full height, and
said, "This you cannot prove to me; we find nothing of this kind
written in the Scriptures." Claes."The prophet Isaiah
prophesied that He should be born of a virgin. Isa. 7:14.
Again, when Gabriel said to Mary: 'Thou shalt conceive and
bring forth a son;' Mary answered: 'How shall this be, seeing I
know not a man?'" Luke 1:31, 34. Priest."Yes, thus you may
glean it here and there; but that she remained virgin until her
death?" Claes."This I do not say." Priest."That is what I mean.
And what do you think of the Supper? do you not believe that
when Christ took bread, and gave thanks, and brake it,
saying'Take, eat; this is my body;' He gave them His natural
flesh and blood?" Claes."No." Priest."Did He not say; 'Except
ye eat the flesh of the Son of man, and drink his blood, ye
have no life in you?' And did He not say that this was the true
heavenly bread, which came down from heaven?" John 6:53, 51.
Claes."The bread of which Christ speaks (John 6), is this the
bread which you give the people to eat, namely, which you
people call the sacrament?" Priest."Yea, it is the same which
He left us." Claes."According to this, then, no one will .be
damned of all those that eat of it; for Christ said: 'If any
man eat of this bread, he shall live forever; but now everyone
comes, whores, knaves, thieves, murderers, of whom it is
written that they shall not inherit the kingdom of heaven.'"
Gal. 5:21. Priest."They have sorrow for their sins, before they
receive it; and the Lord said: 'If the sinner sighs over his
transgression, I will remember it no more forever."' Ezek.
18:21.</p>

<p>In regard to this we had much discussion; but it is too long
to write. At last I asked the priest, whether he believed that
when he takes the host into his mouth, he receives Christ's
body, in fleshand blood, as large as He hung on the tree of the
cross? Priest."Yes." Claes."When you swallow Him, where does He
go then?"' The priest was highly offended. The chief judge
asked me, "Why could you not be satisfied with your first
baptism, but had yourself baptized a second time?" Claes."I
know of but one baptism." Eph. 4:5. Priest."Your sponsors well
know that you, were baptized once! you can ask them."
Claes."Though I had known that I was baptized, yet I now know
that it was done without faith; but it is written (Romans
14:23): 'Whatsoever is not of faith is sin."' <i>Chief</i>
Judge."Your sponsors believed." Claes."I do not know that the
apostles baptized any one, unless he himself believed, and
confessed his faith. But what did I confess when I was baptized
in infancy?" Priest."Ask your sponsors. And what do you think
of our father the pope, and his dominion?" Claes."The pope,
with all his trumpery, and mass, and all that is therein, is
good for nothing, bag and baggage. You priests sell masses to
the people, by the dozen, by twenties. and thirties at a time;
they have neither edge nor point; they neither cut nor stab;
and yet you promise the people that they are good and
effectual-is this not deception? You preach to the people, that
one should not drink to excess, and you go about the streets,
as drunk as hogs. You preach that one ought not to be covetous;
but where is more covetousness than in the priests and monks?
You preach that one ought not to be idle; but where is more
idleness than among you? You will rather tramp from door to
door with a bag or basket, than work, as may be seen." The
priest was angry, rose, and said, "This is the first thing you
teach each other, to reveal the failings of your neighbor.
Claes."Why should we not apply the knowledge Christ has given
us, when He says that the tree shall be known by its fruit?"
Priest."This is to be spiritually understood;" and he went out
of the room.</p>

<p>The chief judge asked me whether I would renounce my second
baptism, and all that I had said. I replied, "No, my lords, I
will in no wise deny that which was administered to me in the
name of the Lord." Hearing this, the chief judge arose. Then
they rose and began to go out. I then thanked them, that they,
had been molested with me. The chief judge turned around and
asked me again, whether I would renounce; or I should see what
should result to me from it. Then my heart was enkindled to
tell him and the other judges, that they should take heed what
they were doing, and I said, "My lords, renounce I will in no
wise, and what will result to me from it, according to the
imperial mandate, I well know; but there are two mandates, the
one from the supreme King, the other from the mortal emperor,
and these two run counter to each other; the one says that both
are to be let grow, the good with the bad; the other that the
tares are to be rooted up. .Therefore, my lords, I pray you, to
warn the other judges, that they consider what is the best; for
you have not</p>

</div><div id="561"> 

<p>received the sword, to punish the innocent." I told them a
great deal, as the Lord gave me utterance. He stood there, with
his cap in his hand, as did also the other judge, and the
jailer, and they kept very silent. Finally they prayed God,
that He would grant me my greatest happiness, and went
away.</p>

<p>Thus I greet the whole church, scattered in every country,
with the peace of the Lord; for I now expect from day to day,
to offer up my sacrifice. Pray God to keep me steadfast unto
the end. I pray daily for you.</p>

<p class="c8">WRITTEN IN BONDS.</p><br />

<br />

<h1>GERRIT HASEPOOT BURNED, A. D. 1556</h1>

<p>In the summer of 1556 there was in the city of Nimeguen, a
faithful brother, named Gerrit Hasepoot, a tailor by trade.
Having fled from the city, on account of severe persecution, he
secretly returned, since his wife and children were still
living there. He was seen by the bailiff's guard, who reported
it to their master. The bailiff, a very bloodthirsty man;
immediately went after him, and took him with him. Thus this
friend of Christ had to separate from his wife and children,
and go into prison, tribulation and misery, for the name of
Jesus. When very severely examined by the lords of this world,
he freely confessed his faith, and was not ashamed of the
truth. Rom. 1:16. He was therefore sentenced to death by them,
that is, to be burnt at the stake, which sentence he received
very bravely. This having taken place, his wife came to him,
into the city hall, to speak with him once more, and to take
leave and bid her dear husband farewell. She had in her arm an-
infant, which she could scarcely hold, because of her great
grief. When wine was poured out to him, as is customary to do
to those sentenced to death (Prov. 31:6), he said to his
wife, "I have no desire for this wine; but I hope to drink the
new wine, which will be given to me above in the kingdom of my
Father." Thus the two separated with great grief, and bade each
other adieu in this world; for the woman could hardly stand on
her feet any longer, but seemed to fall into a swoon through
grief. When he was led to death, and having been brought from
the wagon upon the scaffold, he lifted up his voice, and sang
the hymn, "Father in heaven, I call. Oh, strengthen now my faith."</p>

<p>Thereupon he fell upon his knees, and fervently prayed to
God. Having been placed at the stake, he kicked his slippers
from his feet, saying, "It were a pity to burn them for they can
be of service still to some poor person." The rope with which
he was to be strangled, becoming a little loose, having not
been twisted well by the executioner, he again lifted up his
voice, and sang the end of said hymn.</p>

<p class="c3">"Brethren, sisters, all, good-bye!<br />
We now must separate,<br />
Till we meet beyond the sky,<br />
With Christ our only Head<br />
For this yourselves prepare,<br />
And I'll await you there."</p>

<p>The executioner again twisting the rope, this witness of
Jesus fell asleep in the Lord, and was burnt, voluntarily
surrendering for the truth, his perishable body, which he had
received from God, and thus fought the fight, finished his
course, and kept the faith, and there is now laid up for him
the crown of eternal glory.</p>

<p>Previous to the year 1557, under the reign of the Palsgrave
of the Rhine, several of those baptized according to the
ordinance of Christ were cast into prison, and exiled from the
country, as appears from the preface to the <i>Frankenthalische
Gespraech,</i> and also in the preface to the <i>Oude
O,ferboeck,</i> of the year 1616, letter Y, on the other
side.</p>

<p>From this it appears that the Baptist Christians at this
time had to suffer not only f rom the Romanists, but also from
those who had forsaken the Roman church and many of her
superstitions; from which it may be seen what great distress
the church of God then had to suffer, insomuch that freedom of
conscience was nowhere to be found, since among the papists
they were deprived of their lives, and among other
denominations of the liberty to practice their religious
worship.</p>

<h2>HANS BRAEL SEVERELY PERSECUTED A. D. 1557</h2> 

<p>In the year 1557, a few days before Ascension Day, Brother
Hans Brael, while on a journey, was apprehended in the
Pusterthal, for the faith and testimony of Jesus Christ. Nearly
a league from the castle, he met the judge, who not knowing
him, rode past him, and saluted him, Hans Brael thanking him:
but the actuary rode up to him, and asked him, "Where are you
going and what have you been doing here?" He replied that he
had been with his brethren. The actuary asked him whether the
Baptists were his brethren."Yes," he replied. He then seized
him, and the judge turned about, dismounted, and taking the
brother's own girdle from his body, bound him with it and made
him walk like a dog alongside of his horse, through mud and
mire, for a whole league, until they arrived in the castle. He
was so fatigued from walking, and from being bound so hard,
that he could stand no longer, but fell down in the field, so
that even the lord of the castle reproved the judge for having
bound him so hard. There they examined him, taking from him
whatever they found on his body, and put him into prison. The
next day he was forthwith brought out, and the lord of the
castle examined him himself, and asked him concerning his faith
and baptism, and what he thought of the sacrament. When he made
confession of his faith and the divine truth, they abandoned
everything, and pressed him hard to recant. But when he plainly
told them, not to count on his renouncing the truth confessed,
they brought him back into prison.</p>

</div><div id="562"> 

<p>Eight days after, he was brought out again, and the lord
with six others examined him; but being unable to accomplish
anything, they remanded him to prison. After another eight days
they arraigned and examined him before the whole council, and
the judge called his faith a delusion, and his church a sect.
Acts 24:14. But Hans said, "It is neither a sect nor a delusion;
but it is the church of God." The judge said, "It may be the
devil's; how could it be God's church?" and became angry over
it and said again,"On what account should it be called the
church of God?" But Brother Hans boldly adhered to it, that it
was the church of God. Then said the judge, "Since he knows who
has come from the seignioralty of Innsbruck, we also want to
know where those are whom they send out into this country, what
their names are, who has fed and harbored them; all this we
want to know." But he answered them, "We are not sent out to the
harm or detriment of any one; but our calling is, that we shall
seek the salvation of men and exhort them-to repentance and
reformation (Matt. 10:5; Acts 2: 38); but the things that are
asked here are not articles of faith, nor are they necessary to
know; hence I do not wish to tell them, nor to accuse any one."
The judge admonished him urgently, to spare himself, since his
body should be tortured, if he refused to name the persons, and
to confess who had harbored him. Hans asked the judge and the
whole council, whether he could be considered good if he
adopted the proposed means, and betrayed those who had shown
him such kindness, by feeding and lodging him. The members of
the council looked at each other, and said themselves that they
should not consider it good, if it were done to them. But the
judge became enraged, and asked whether he meant to charge the
honorable council with requiring treachery of him, and again
admonished him very solemnly, to spare himself, or they should
deal very severely with him. But as he would not confess to
them, they remanded him again to prison, to see what he should
resolve upon.</p>

<p>After this they brought him forth again, and took him to the
rack, where he himself took off his clothes, lay dawn before
them, and patiently submitted to the!torturing ropes, so that
the eyes of the bystanders filled with tears, and they could
not refrain from weeping.</p>

<p>The executioner suspended him by the rope, but the judge
earnestly admonished him to spare himself, and to indicate the
persons required; but he said he would betray no one but would
bide whatever God permitted them to inflict upon him. Then they
tied a large stone to his feet. The judge became angry, when he
perceived that he could accomplish nothing, and said, "You swear
to each other that you will not betray one another." He
replied, "We do not swear, but we do not betray any one, because
it would be wrong." Then the judge said, "You are a rogue; I
have detected you in a lie; why will you suffer yourself to be
tortured." The brother said, "I am no rogue, and in what lie
have youdetected me?" The judge said, "You said that you were no
teacher, but we find that you certainly are one." He
answered, "I am no teacher; but if I were one, I would not be
ashamed of it; for it is an honorable thing before God." I Tim.
3:1.</p>

<p>Thereupon they left him hanging by the rope, and went away;
but the executioner staid with him. In the meantime the
officers assembled, and he was admonished to confess; or they
would not cease racking him until they should have rent his
limbs asunder. He replied that he would bide what God should
permit them to inflict upon him, since they could do no more
than God permitted them. The executioners said, "Are you not a
fool, to think that God looks down to see what we are doing in
this hole; for this would be ridiculous." Then the council
returned and said that the lady of the castle had interceded
for him, that they should torture him no longer, and, hence,
they would let it rest; and they sent him back to prison.</p>

<p>Thereupon the lord very joyfully rode to Innsbruck, to the
government, and when he returned, he had the priests dispute
with and examine Hans for two days in succession, namely
Saturday and Sunday, he himself being present. But when they
could accomplish nothing by their various disputations, and
false and deceitful doctrine, which it would take too long to
relate, and he remained steadfast, and constantly confessed
that that in which he stood, and would remain steadfast, by the
protection and help of God, was the truth, the lord at last
became exasperated at him, and said, "O you obdurate dog, I have
tried all possible means and ways with you, and will still do
so, and place you on a sharp pile, and see how you will trust
your God in this trial." But he answered, "I shall not suffer on
account of any wrong-doing, but only for the truth and the
faith; and God will overlook no wrong." After three days they
put him into a deep, dark and filthy tower, where he could see
neither sun nor moon, nor daylight, so that he did not know
whether it was day or night, only he perceived now and then
that it was night, when it was a little colder in the tower
than at other times. It was also so moist and damp in the
tower, that his clothes rotted on his body, so that he became
almost naked, and was without a single garment for a long time,
only he had a coarse blanket that had been given him, which he
wrapped around his body and thus sat in misery and darkness.
The shirt on his body had so rotted, that he had not a shred
left of it, except the collar, which he hung on the wall.</p>

<p>At one time when these children of Pilate had him brought
out to try him whether he would not apostatize, the light so
hurt his eyes, that he was glad when they let him down again
into the (lark tower. There also proceeded such a fetid stench
f rom the filth that was in this dark hole, that no one could
stay in his presence; when they brought him in, they instantly
had to go away from him again; yea, the councilors said
themselves, that they had</p>

</div><div id="563"> 

<p>never smelled such a horrible stench. Thus he lay in this
filthy tower, in which were also many vermin and loathesome
reptiles, so that at first he for a long time protected his
head, with an old hat, which had been thrown to him out of
pity. The tower, for a long time had not had an occupant; hence
the vermin were very numerous, and they caused him much terror,
until he got used to it. The vermin sometimes also ate his
food, so that when they let down his food, he had to eat it all
up, before he set down the dish; otherwise the vermin so
covered it, that he could not well eat it. When he got a dish
of soup, and set it down but once, they ate it up. in a moment
in short, he could keep neither bread nor anything else; for as
soon as the vermin smelled it, instantly they were at it.
However, this was his least care, inasmuch as he was so
tormented with hunger, no great abundance being given him so
that he could easily eat it up, if he was only well. The vermin
sometimes got also in his drink, and drowned therein, until he
finally obtained a large stone, which he placed on top of his
pitcher.</p>

<p>His chief affliction, however, in this great trial was, that
he could get no tidings from the church or the brethren. At
that time there was in the high country one Hans Mein, a
servant of the Lord, who also had a great desire to hear some
tidings from him. He sent word to him in the tower, that if it
were still well with him, and his heart adhered firmly to God
and his church, he should send him a certain token: and if he
had nothing else, he should send him a little bit of straw,
however little it might be. But such was the misery and poverty
in which he sat that he could not even find that much in the
tower. Then he bethought himself of his rotten collar which he
had hung on the wall; lie was glad of it, and took the collar
and sent it from the tower to his brother, as a token that he
was still unchanged in his faith in God, and in peace with the
church. When the brother received the collar, and thereby
perceived his misery and poverty, he and his church felt great
compassion for him, and after weeping bitterly and sorrowfully,
they sent word back to him, that they were very willing to send
him clothes or anything else, in his great poverty, if he only
could get it. But he would not have it, because that if they
had discovered it, they would have thrown him on the rack and
tortured him again,. in order to get the names of others. Hence
he sent them word, that he should let the garment ,of patience
do him.</p>

<p>Thus he lay in this filthy tower all summer, until after
Michaelmas, in autumn, when they saw that the frost was
approaching; then they took him out, and put him into another
prison, which could likewise not have been worse. There he had
to sit, with one hand and one foot in the stocks,.for
thirtyseven weeks, being unable to lie or sit properly, but
only to stand; besides, he had to endure much reproach and
ridicule from the ungodly, who said, "There lies a holy man; nobody <i>is</i> as wise as he;
there he sits as a light of the world, and as a witnessof the
people of God and His church," and such like taunting
remarks.</p>

<p>Again, since he could get no comforting tidings from the
church, God so ordered at that he was comforted. by the
unbelieving; for on a certain occasion a nobleman came to
comfort him, telling him to be courageous, and not to suffer
himself to be intimidated since he well knew that he had the
truth <i>on</i> his side, and that his faith was the true one,
but that it were impossible to follow it, or to suffer what he
suffered; whereupon the brother earnestly admonished him. Once
it also happened that his soul was kindled in God, and he sent
for the actuary who had, apprehended him, that he should come
to him in prison. The latter very quickly came to him, sat
down, and asked him what he wished, that he had sent for him.
The brother said, "The sole reason is; that I cannot forbear
showing you, that, as you well know, that you are the chief
cause of my imprisonment and miserable sufferings, though I
have never in all my life done you an injury." The actuary sat
there frightened and dumb, saying not a word, save that he had
to do it."The brother said: 'Yes, the judgment of God impelled
you to it; because you were so bloodthirsty against the pious,
it also fell to your lot to fulfill your judgment thereby. You
have incurred a heavy judgment; God will certainly find you for
this, require it at your hands, and punish you for your sins."'
The actuary was dumbfounded and could not utter a word; so
frightened was he; and thus he went away. About a fortnight
afterwards he died very suddenly in the night, being both well
and dead within a quarter of an hour. God had smitten him with
great fear, so that he cried and moaned terribly, and lamented
that he had done wrong and sinned.</p>

<p>Thus it goes with those, who will serve the devil and his
minions. I say nothing of the fact that he was severely
reprehended for this by his master and his mistress, and reaped
the devil's thanks for it from his own; for they said to him,
so loud that the brother heard it himself, "How came the devil
so to possess you, that you would not let this man go, though
you might easily have done so?" and they wished that the devil
rather had carried him off, since he had committed this deed,
for which he -at last had to pay so dearly.</p>

<p>In the same night that he died, a great joy came over the
brother, so that with praying and thanksgiving he could not
praise God sufficiently; for on that night it came into his
mind that he should yet return to the brethren and the church.
In the morning a servant came to him, and told him, that the
actuary had died very terribly and suddenly during the night.
Ps. 73:18. This having transpired with the actuary; the lord
and his spouse were seized with great terror.</p>

<p>About eight days afterwards, the servant who attended to the
tillage of the land came into the castle, and, towards evening,
came to the brother, with the keys, and asked whether he hoped
to get out.. He</p>

</div><div id="564"> 

<p>replied, "I will see what you will do with me." The servant
wanted to open the stocks, but could not find the right key.
The brother told him not to do it, since it might go ill with
him. But when he could not find the right key, he told him that
he could set him at liberty, but it would probably not be at
that time. The lady of the castle also sent a servant before
the prison, who called to the brother, and said, "The gracious
lady would have me tell you, that she will send for the judge
and the jurate, and if you will say but two words, that you
will suffer yourself to be instructed, and confess that you
have erred, you will be set at liberty, and she will take upon
her the sin which you commit by it, so that no guilt will fall
upon you." But he replied, "She has sins enough already, let her
desist from them: she needs no sins from others." I Tim. 5:22,
1. Hence he had to lie in prison and sorrow for another
winter.</p>

<p>Then an order came from Innsbruck, from the council, which
the lords came to read to him. It contained the following:
Since he was so obdurate, and would receive no instruction, he
should be sent to sea.; and thither he should go the next
morning; there he should find out, how evildoers are stripped
and scourged. But he replied that he would trust in God his
Lord, who was on sea as well as on the land, to help him, and
give him patience. II Cor. 1:9; Matt. 14:31.</p>

<p>They then let him out of prison, and walk about in the
castle for two days, that he should learn to walk again; for he
was not well able to walk, so greatly had he become impaired in
the use of his limbs by imprisonment, stocks, fetters and
bonds, in which he had lain for two years, less five weeks,
having not seen the sun for about a year and a half.</p>

<p>He was then given in the custody of one of the servants, who
was to take him to the sea. Hence he took leave from everyone
in the castle, and exhorted them to repentance. The lady of the
castle sent word to him that he should come to her, which he
did. She called him into her study, where he took leave from
her, and exhorted her also to repentance, and entreated her not
to molest the pious (who do no hurt, in the exercise of their
religion) and not to apprehend any more of them, to which she
consented, and began to weep, so that the tears flowed down her
cheeks, and said, "Nevermore in my life shall I lay hands upon
them." She gave him some money for the journey, and dismissed
him.</p>

<p>This servant then took him away with him. The servant was a
wicked man; he called the brother a rogue on every occasion, or
applied some other opprobrious epithet to him.</p>

<p>Having led him two days, the servant so filled himself with
wine, in a tavern, at Niederdorf (for those present had so
often drank his health), that, instead of going to bed to
sleep, he stretched himself upon the table, and instantly
falling asleep like a dumb beast, he rolled off the table.</p>

<p>Seeing this, the brother opened the door of theroom, and
also that of the house, locked them again, and went away.</p>

<p>Thus did God help him to make his escape that night, which
took place in the year 1559, and thus he returned in peace and
with joy to the church of the Lord, his brethren. Subsequently
he again went up into the country, several times, as the
ministry of the divine Word had been committed to him.</p>

<p>From this it may be seen how God succors and helps His own,
and how He can give to those who cleave to Him with a true
heart, much strength and patience in suffering, through their
strong faith, which would otherwise be impossible. II Tim.
4:17; Philip. 4:13; Matt. 17:20. And it is also seen how He
casts out His enemies and adversaries, and knows where to find
them; for not only did the actuary die a very dreadful death,
as has already been stated; but, while Hans Brael yet lay in
prison, the lord of the castle died suddenly; and the servant
who was to take Hans to the sea, also died miserably, even
before the brother left the country; and about two years
afterwards also the judge died, yet not an ordinary, but a most
miserable death. II Macc. 9:5.</p>

<h2>JANNEKEN WALRAVEN BURNED, A. D. 1557</h2> 

<p>In the year 1557, on Pentecost eve, there was burnt alive,
at Antwerp, in Brabant, for the immovable foundation of the
truth, and the testimony of Jesus Christ, Janneken Walraven,
the mother of Jacques Walraven, who was a minister of the Word
at Amsterdam, among the Baptists, and, consequently, well known
to many. His mother, though one of the weaker vessels, I Pet.
3:7, was nevertheless not weak in faith, but valiant and
steadfast, and fought the good fight of faith, and gained the
victory through the grace of God, who never forsakes His own,
but succors them, and goes with them through water and fire,
lest they should suffer detriment to the salvation of their
souls. Therefore, since she conquered with her bridegroom, by
suffering and dying for His holy name, her immortal soul is
under the altar with all the holy martyrs, and is patiently
waiting for full salvation at the coming of her Bridegroom,
when He shall appear in the clouds of the sky, to unite and
glorify body and soul, and to make them like unto His own
glorious body, that she may rejoice with Him forever.</p>

<h2>JORIAEN SIMONS, CLEMENT DIRKS, AND A WOMAN<br />
NAMED MARY JORIS, A. D. 1557</h2> 

<p>At this time three other pious witnesses of the truth fell
into the hands of the tyrants, at Haarlem, in Holland. They
were Joriaen Simons, Clement Dirks, and a woman named Mary
Joris. They all, as faithful servants, through the grace of
God, steadfastly endured, at said place, hard imprisonment and
severe examinations for the truth of</p>

</div><div id="565"> <br />
 

<p>Christ, and did not, with the slothful servant, hide the
talent which they had received, into the earth, but did very
earnestly put it out upon usury, and boldly proclaimed from the
door of their prison the Word of the Lord to the edification of
everyone, and, moreover, through a hymn composed by them, made
known the cause of their imprisonment; namely, that they did
not suffer as thieves and murderers, or as such as coveted
other men's property, but that they suffered only for the faith
of the truth, and a pure conscience; and that they, on the
other hand, because of the pure fear of God, could not follow
falsehood. Of this they set forth the principal points in a
hymn, as follows</p>

<p>1. That they with all true witnesses of God believe and
confess, by virtue of the holy Scriptures: That Jesus Christ,
blessed forever, came from above from heaven, and proceeded
from God His heavenly Father, and is therefore pure and
spotless, and is not of Adam's sinful and corruptible
nature.</p>

<p>2. Because they were baptized upon their faith, according to
the ordinance of Christ, and, on the contrary, confessed that
infant baptism was not of God, but contrary to His Word; and
that it is well known, from Christ's own words, that infants
are fully in the grace of God, and in a saved condition,
without baptism or any other ceremony having to be administered
to them, they therefore hold, that all that is done by such
means, as being necessary for the salvation of infants is
nothing but vain human presumption.</p>

<p>3. Concerning the Lord's Supper, they confess, that they
also observed it, according to the command of the Lord, and
according to the institution of Christ, as He, blessed forever
held it with His apostles; in which each is to examine himself
well, before he goes to this table, and that Christ did not
hold His supper with drunkards and adulterers, or with such of
whom evil things were known, as is customary with the
papists.</p>

<p>4. On the contrary, they emphatically rejected the papists'
little piece of baked bread, or consecrated host, which they
recommend to people as the true, essential Son of God, from
whom to entreat grace and salvation in time of need; and
confessed that they do grossly err, who worship such bread, or
put any divine confidence in it.</p>

<p>5. Because they could not recognize the pope and the Roman
church as the church of God, but opposed it and all its
ceremonies; neither could they hold the traffic which they
carry on therein, to be of God.</p>

<p>6. Because they recognized no other punishment of
transgressors in the church, than evangelical separation; by
which the evil can be kept away from the good, in order to
present to the Lord a pure church, in which none that are
unclean or polluted may dwell, but from which they are
expelled. This church they confess to be the queen and bride of
Christ.</p>

<p>By this and the like the fire of the Gospel burned so
mightily in Haarlem, notwithstanding the violence of these
tyrants, that in the very night when they were thus accused, a
glorious exhortation was fearlessly preached to the edification
of all, by the God-fearing Bouwen Lubberts, in Schouts' street;
which exhortation did much good.</p>

<p>When, on the 26th of April 1557, the abovementioned Joriaen
and Clement were brought forth to death, the common people
greatly commiserated them; but they said, "Weep not for us, but
for your sins, and repent truly." After they had offered up
their prayer to God with a fervent heart, each was placed at a
stake, and they said, "We suffer not for evildoing, but only for
the obedience of the truth." And having, with a firm trust,
commended their spirits or souls into the hands of God, they
courageously offered their necks for the truth, and were first
strangled, and then burnt; and thus they, to the consolation
and joy of many pious persons, continued steadfast unto the end
in the accepted truth of the holy Gospel.</p>

<p>When they had finished their tyranny by strangling and
burning, they, in order to quench their doctrine, also thought
to burn their books (for as old writers tell us, Joriaen Simons
was engaged in selling books); but when the books were
perceived to be on fire, there arose such an uproar among the
people, that the lords took to flight, whereupon the books were
thrown among the multitude, who reached for them with
eagerness; so that, through divine providence, the truth,
instead of being quenched, as it was sought to do, was spread
the more, by the reading of so great a number of these
books.</p>

<p>The above-mentioned Mary Joris also remained faithful in
this trial, and likewise confessed her faith boldly before the
lords, and was ready to surrender her life, together with her
brethren, for the name of the Lord. But being pregnant, she had
to wait until her delivery; however, the Lord ordered it
otherwise-she died in travail, and was thus released from the
flesh, so that these tyrants could not fulfill their desire
with her. And thus she fell asleep in the Lord, with her
brethren.</p>

<p>If any desire, let him read this account in the old hymn
book, as put into verse by these witnesses themselves, in
prison, as also by the pious Bouwen Lubberts.</p>

<h2>A TESTAMENT LEFT BY JORIAEN SIMONS TO HIS<br />
SON SIMON, WHEN HE WAS IMPRISONED FOR<br />
THE WORD OF THE LORD, AT HAARLEM,<br />
WHERE HE WAS AFTERWARDS PUT<br />
TO DEATH, ON THE 26TH OF<br />
APRIL, IN THE YEAR 1557</h2> 

<p>May God through His great mercy grant to my son Simon, to
grow up virtuously, and if the Lord permit him to reach the
years of understanding, to confess Him, and having learned His
will, to order his life in accordance with it, in order to</p>

</div><div id="566"> 

<p>obtain eternal salvation, through His beloved Son Jesus
Christ, together with the Holy Ghost. Amen.</p>

<p>My child and dear son, incline your ears to the admonition
of your father, and hearken to my account, how and in what
manner he commenced and finished his life.</p>

<p>The beginning of my life was unprofitable, proud, puffed-up,
drunken, selfish, deceitful, and full of all manner of
idolatry. And when I attained maturity, and began to be my own
master, I sought nothing but what pleased my flesh, an indolent
and luxurious life. I was greedy of filthy lucre; I sought to
bring my neighbor's daughter to fall, as, alas! appears from my
work; and what I did in secret, is too shameful to mention;
yea, I was a vessel full of iniquity. But, my dear child, when
I betook myself to the Scriptures, and searched and perused
them, I found that my life tended to eternal death, yea, that
everlasting woe was hanging over me, and that the fiery pool
which burns with brimstone and pitch was prepared for me. This,
I say, was approaching me, according to the words of Paul, who
says, "They which do such things shall not inherit the kingdom
of God." Gal. 5:21.</p>

<p>When I took this to heart, I began to be greatly alarmed and
frightened, and took the Word of God for my counselor, as to
which should be the more advisable for me: to lead here, for a
little while, a voluptuous life, and to expect the everlasting
pains of hell; or to suffer here a little misery (if misery it
can be called), and then to enjoy eternal happiness. I found in
the Scriptures, "What is a man profited, if he shall gain the
whole world, and lose his own soul? or, what shall a man give
in exchange for his soul?" Matt. 16:26. Hence, my beloved son,
I deemed it better, like Moses, to suffer affliction with the
children of God for a little while, than to live in every
luxury with the world, which will perish. Thus I abandoned my
ease, voluntarily and uncompelled, and entered upon the narrow
way, to follow Christ, my Head, well knowing that if I should
follow Him unto the end, I should not walk in darkness. Now,
when I had partly forsaken and cast from me the old damnable
practices, and wanted to be a new divine creature, and to lead
a pious, penitent, godly life, I was immediately, like all the
pious that had been before me, hated, yea, imprisoned in
Haarlem, in St. John's gate.</p>

<p>This, my beloved.son, was my life till the Lord enlightened
me. First of all, my dear child, I would affectionately warn,
admonish and entreat you, to beware of and shun all wickedness,
and to walk from infancy in the fear of the Lord, which is the
beginning of wisdom; and if God reveal His wisdom to you,
hesitate not to walk in it, since death pursues the young as
well as the old. Improve the time given you by God for
repentance. Have your intercourse with the good, and beware of
the perverse. If sinners entice you, consent not, and have no
fellowship with them; refrain your foot from their path, for
their steps take hold on hell. Hence, touch not pitch, lest you
be defiled; for an evil enddraws nigh to the wicked, which will
bear the burden everywhere. Of this and every evil, my dear
son, beware, and remember that Paul says, that we must all
appear before the judgment seat of Christ, that everyone may
receive the things done in his body, according to that he hath
done, whether it be good or bad (II Cor. 5:10), but the flesh
will advise you to nothing good. Hence Paul may well say, "To be
carnally minded is death, yea, they that are in the flesh,
cannot please God." Rom. 8:6, 8. Therefore, mortify your carnal
members here on earth. Read Paul, or have him read to you; he
will tell you, which are the works of the flesh. Gal. 5: 19. If
you have time and opportunity, use diligence to learn to read
and write, that you may learn and know the better, what the
Lord requires of you.</p>

<p>Beloved son, my heart's desire and prayer to the Lord for
you is, that your soul may be protected from the deluge of
God's wrath, that shall come upon all the ungodly who did not
care for the Lord, and walked not in His commandments. This
impending wrath of God you can escape in no better way than by
looking to Jesus Christ, the Son of the Almighty and eternal
Father, who is the Head and Pattern of all believers, yea, the
Captain and Finisher of the faith, that is, Jesus Christ. Ask
Him for counsel, as to what is best and most necessary for you
to do, and He will tell you, knock at the door of His Holy
Trinity, and worship Him; He will open to you, and give you
what is needful for you. Have a desire and appetite for the
truth, and you shall be satisfied. Seek not high temporal
things; though they that obtain them, are called and commended
as happy by the common people; they are nevertheless unhappy
and rejected before God. Hence humble yourself under the mighty
hand of God, that you may be exalted in eternity. I Peter
5:5.</p>

<p>Behold how He fared, and likewise all the pious before and
after Him; His birth was poor and miserable; immediately He had
to flee from Herod, who sought His life; when He suffered, He
had not where to rest His head, and the thanks for all His
great and glorious benefits were that they called Him a
deceiver, wine-bibber, Samaritan, and one who had a devil,
besides, He had to expect being stoned by them, until they,
when the time was fulfilled, condemned Him to the most shameful
death. And previous to the law, pious Abel had to suffer from
his brother Cain, who killed him, out of pure hatred and envy,
because his brother's works were good and acceptable to God,
and his own evil and rejected. And all the dear prophets, who
practiced and maintained the Word of God, had likewise to
suffer much, without any respect of persons. Micaiah, who alone
was found true among four hundred false prophets, in the days
of King Ahab, was beaten by Zedekiah, and afterwards cast into
prison. I Kings 22:24. Elijah, the only true prophet among the
four hundred and fifty false priests of Jezebel (I Kings
18:19), also had to suffer much; so that Paul may well say
(for</p>

</div><div id="567"> 

<p>he had experienced it himself) that all that Will live godly
in Christ.Jesus, shall suffer persecution. II Tim. 3:11.</p>

<p>This also all other pious witnesses of Christ experienced,
and remained steadfast unto the end; wherefore, according to
the Scriptures (James 1</p>

<p>12), the crown is prepared for them, since Christ's own
mouth declares that he that shall endure unto the end, shall be
saved; he that overcometh shall inherit all things, shall be
clothed in white, and shall eat of the tree of life, which is
in the midst of paradise. Matt. 24:13; Rev. 21:7; 2:7.</p>

<p>Consider this, my beloved son; meditate night and day, how
to die unto the world, and to fulfill the will of Christ. In
the first place, and before everything else, beware of all
false prophets and hypocrites, which in my time were the
priests and monks, and who, I apprehend, will not be lacking in
your time, so long as rich emoluments follow them. Do not
believe them, for they deceive men, and murder their souls. My
son, he that wrote you this, learned it by his own experience
and investigation; he drank of this cup himself. Neither live
among any sect, of whom there were many in my time already, as
Lutherans, Zwinglians, and others, who, though they have a good
semblance, yet, in fact, are evil and deadly poison. Look for
the little flock, whose entire rule of life agrees with God's
commandments, and whose ordinance or sacrament is in conformity
with the command of Christ and the practice of the apostles;
this is the true church of Christ, without spot or wrinkle;
this church is flesh of His flesh, and bone of His bones. These
also have teachers according to the teaching of Paul (I Tim.
3:2), blameless in everything, who have obedient children and
believing wives, who are strangers to litigations and
processes, to cursing and swearing, to hatred and envy, to
lying and cheating, to lasciviousness and adultery. There
everything is love. peace, unity and truth, as Paul will teach
you, which are the fruits of the Spirit.</p>

<p>My dear son and beloved child, this is my chief and last
will, my testament to you, which I desire you to rea
diligently, to meditate well upon it, and to compar~ it to the
Scriptures, in order to govern your steps in accordance with
it. Mark well, my son, what I write: many will appear in the
garb of good teachers, saying that they have medicine for your
sick soul; but the ones that will profit you, are those who
have the truth; adhere to them. Water and fire are set before
you: stretch forth your hand unto whether you will, unto death
or life. Sirach 15:16. This, my dear son, will at first be very
hard f or you to hear, since it is contrary to your first
birth, which is of the flesh; but you must be born again, and
converted, if you would enter into the kingdom of God. You
cannot understand this so long as you are carnally-minded, yea,
so long as you do not become the fool and enemy of the world.
Dearly beloved son, I entreat you again, as I did before, to
consider this, and to govern yourself, in accordance with it.
Out of a faithful father'sheart I have left you this, when
about to depart from this world, and to die for the Word of the
Lord. May the Lord grant you, and all who read this, or hear it
read, that they may take it to heart, act according to it, and
be eternally saved.</p>

<p>My son's testament, written in the year 1557, the first
Monday in April, and confirmed by death, the 26th day of the
same month.</p>

<h2>THREE OTHER BRIEF ADMONITORY LETTERS BY<br />
fORIAEN SIMONS AND HIS FELLOW<br />
PRISONERS</h2> 

<p>May God grant peace, joy and consolation in all trouble and
suffering to all those who have to suffer for His Word, through
His beloved Son, in the power of the Holy Ghost. Amen.</p>

<p>We would inform our most beloved brethren and sisters in the
Lord, and all who seek to fear the Lord with the whole heart,
that we are all (the Lord be praised forever) of very good
cheer, and hope to adhere to the Word of the Lord, and not to
depart from it, for any visible thing, yea, neither for life
nor death, since there is nothing, we trust, which shall be
able to separate us from the love of God; we shall be able to
do all things through Him who strengthens us; we trust by our
God to leap over walls. Rom. 8:35; Phil. 4:13; Ps. 18:29.</p>

<p>Dear friends, rejoice with us; why should we fear, when
there are so many in the world, who, for a little gain, expose
themselves to the greatest danger, both of soul and body, on
water and on the land, not knowing withal, whether in case of
success there will be gain or loss? But we know that when we
have completed this journey by the help of the Lord, all is
gain, and there can be no loss; for we run not as uncertainly;
we fight not as one that beats the air; but we are assured by
the grace of the Lord, that, if we fight through valiantly, as
we trust we shall do, we shall receive that which is promised
us. We intend to return to them fourfold; we shall not keep
silence, but proclaim aloud, what the Lord gives and reveals to
us. Our Sister Mariken is also of very good cheer, and has
rightfully confessed her faith, to which she wants to adhere as
long as there is breath in her; she is of such courage and good
cheer, that she delights and rejoices us all. We exhort each
other with the Word of the Lord, as much as God gives each to
speak, now by words, now by hymns; yea, I have many hours in
which I never once think of it that I am prisoner; such is the
joy which the Lord gives us. I thank you with all my heart,
that you have fulfilled my request,. also for your affectionate
exhortation. Do the best you can as regards my H. F. I commend
you to the Lord, and to the Word of His grace.</p>

<h2>JORIAEN SIMONS IN BONDS</h2> 

<p><i>Our most beloved brethren and sisters in the Lord,</i>
and all who desire to fear .and follow the Lord with all their
heart, we, the prisoners in the</p>

</div><div id="569"> 

<p>Lord, wish you a valiant and.steadfast mind, and
perseverance in the truth, unto the end; through Jesus Christ
our Lord, Saviour and Redeemer, in the power of the Holy Ghost.
Amen.</p>

<p>Greatly beloved brethren and sisters in the Lord, be it
known to your love, that through the grace of the Lord we all
strive for the best, seeking it with the whole heart, so that
we want to offer ourselves up into the hands of the Lord,
whether it bring . us life or death. We also seek with the
whole heart, that the Lord will magnify His glorious name
through us, and we keep before our eyes the Author and Finisher
of our faith, Jesus. We know that the servant is not greater
than his lord. It is a faithful saying, and worthy of all
acceptation, that if we suffer with Him, we shall also rejoice
with Him. To this all the pious witnesses of Christ had
respect, and unto His great promises, which we have in the Old
Testament, and which were given to the pious fathers, who hoped
for the grace that should come, and therefore valiantly fought
for the law of God; and would have no intercourse with the
surrounding nations, and there fore voluntarily surrendered
their lives, because they would not worship or honor their
molten or carved images; even as pious Eleazar, who would not
eat swine's flesh, contra to the law. II Mace. 6:18. By the
grace of the Lord we hope to take His salutary words for our
pattern, namely, that it is best to adhere to the Lord; for
though through hyp9crisy (from which God preserve us) we should
save our lives, yet should we not escape the Almighty hand of
God, neither alive nor dead. Therefore we will surrender
ourselves entirely into the hands of the Lord, as did the pious
Maccabean mother and her seven sons (II Mace. 7:1); and as did
all the pious witnesses of Christ, who 'even rejoiced that they
were counted worthy to suffer for the name of Christ. Acts
5:41: Thus, beloved brethren, we are minded in the Lord, and
not otherwise. We trust by the grace of the Lord to be unto the
weak babes that still feed on milk, an example of piety and
steadfastness.</p>

<p>This was written by me on Monday, after I had been before
the lords twice, and been interrogated whether I would adhere
to my confession.</p>

<p><i>Our greatly beloved brethren. and sisters in the
Lord,</i> and all who want to fear and follow the Lord with the
whole heart, we, the prisoners in the Lord, wish you that the
gracious heavenly Father will preserve you from all harm from
within and without, through His dear, beloved Son Christ Jesus,
and the Holy Ghost. Amen.</p>

<p>Dearly beloved brethren in the Lord; faint not, though you
now have to wander from friends and kindred, house and home,
not knowing whither you shall go, since the heat of the sun now
begins everywhere to scorch the seed that has sprung up.
Matthew 13:6. Brethren, be not cast down; let the seed in you
get.and retain moisture; sit under the shadow of the
Scriptures, and they will be a glorious protection unto you. We
know that we mustthrough much tribulation enter into the
kingdom of heaven. When the head suffers, all the members
suffer with it; hence, if we would be members, of Christ, we
must also be partakers of the sufferings of the Head; if we,
then, suffer with Him, we shall also rejoice with Him.</p>

<p>Therefore, dear brethren, if the Lord suffer you to live for
awhile longer among this wicked generation, pass the time of
your sojourning here in fear; stand out as lights in this evil,
wicked world, and let your faith manifest itself in works, else
it is dead. Keep your eyes fixed on Jesus Christ, the Captain
and Finisher of the faith; He is the only cornerstone in Zion,
and other foundation can no man lay, than that is laid, which
is Jesus Christ. Hold that fast which you have, that no man
take your crown. We commend you to the Lord; may He.guide you
into all truth.</p>

<p>I, Joriaen Simons, your dear brother, and my dear fellow
prisoners, wish you every good thing, and we seek the best with
all our heart.</p>

<p>As we, through the secretary of the city of Haarlem, have
come into possession of the sentence of death passed upon the
afore-mentioned friends Joriaen Simons and Clement Dirks, we
deem it well, here to adduce the same, so that everyone may be
fully assured with regard to the foregoing account. It reads
(except the title) as follows:</p>

<p><i>Sentence o f death of Joriaen Simons of Hallmen,</i><br />
<i>and Clement Dirks of Haarlem</i></p>

<p>Whereas. Joriaen Simons, of Hallmen, in Friesland, and
Clement Dirks, of Haarlem, both weavers, and now prisoners,
have confessed, without torture and iron bonds, to have been
rebaptized, and to hold most pernicious views with regard to
the worthy, holy sacraments of the altar and confession, and to
the circumstances and ceremonies of the holy church, and
have:also undertaken, said Joriaen to sell and distribute
divers false books, and Clement to read and teach them, and
since both continue stubborn, obstinate and hardened in said
errors and pernicious views, therefore, the lords of the court,
having heard the address and conclusion made by Pieter van
Zouteland, bailiff of this city, against and concerning these
persons, pursuant to the decrees and edicts of his Royal
Majesty, last confirmed by his Royal Majesty, our gracious
lord, have condemned said Joriaen Simons of Hallmen, and
Clement Dirks, as rebaptized heretics and disturbers of the
common peace and.of the Christian religion, and hereby sentence
them, each to be placed at a stake, and executed with fire,
pursuant to the aforesaid decrees and edicts, and, declare the
entire property of said Joriaen, and the property of said
Clement Dirks to the sum of sixty pounds, and no more, if it
exceed said sum, confiscated and forfeited, according to the
privilege of this city, for the benefits of his Royal Majesty.
Thus resolved, the 26th of April, A. D. 1557, by Joost van
Hitgem, and Dirk van Berkerve, Burgomasters, Wilm Harmans
Ramp,</p>

</div><div id="569"> 

<p>Jan Koninks, Jan Matthijss, Jan Raet, and Adriaen Willems,
judges, and pronounced in the court the same day in the
presence of the bailiff and the afore-mentioned judges.</p>

<p>Extracted from the first book of criminal records, beginning
the 29th of November, 1539, and ending the 27th of October,
1582, in the keeping of the secretary of the city of Haarlem,
with which book this copy is found to agree.</p>

<p>By me, the undersigned secretary of said city, the 10th of
July, A. D. 1659.</p>

<p class="c8">Voll.</p><br />

<h1>SIX BRETHREN STRANGLED AT THE STAKE IN VOLEWIJK, NEAR AMSTERDAM, A. D. 1555</h1>

<p>It occurred A. D. 1555, when the first separation took place
among the Anabaptists, because Gillis of Aix-la-Chapelle and
others began to introduce that to which the other brethren of
Waterland could not subscribe or consent, that these brethren
maintained themselves as a separate people, without, however
having been separated or banished from the others; but they
became a forgotten, yea, a lost people: so that the Waterland
brethren, on account of the severe persecution, could not live
in houses, but had to keep themselves in boats and in the
field, because they knew not where to hide themselves from the
constables, who were looking for them everywhere, and sought
their lives. It was at this time that six brethren, who were
together in a boat, were apprehended in the Oostsaner field,
and brought to Amsterdam, where they were sentenced to death.
It was in the beginning of the winter when they were brought in
the Volewijk, and all strangled at the stake. There was
freezing weather for thirteen weeks from this time on, and,
what is remarkable, during all these thirteen weeks a light
like a candle stood over each stake to which the bodies of the
six brethren were fastened, and burned all night. After the
expiration of the thirteen weeks, a violent storm and rain
arose, and, consequently, a great thaw ensued so that the water
rose very high, and the ice was rent asunder by the wind.
Around the body of one of the six brethren the water stood so
high, that the stake, through the force of the ice pressing
against it, was broken in two, and fell down upon the ice. His
body drifted hither and thither on the ice, with .the tide,
between Sparendam and Volewijk. In that neighborhood there were
two persons, each in a boat, who were both novices in the
church. Passing along there in the night, they saw the
aforesaid lightlike a candle on the ice. Looking sharply, they
thought it stood on Jaapje Maet (so they called this brother).
As soon as it was daylight they went to two sisters that were
concealed in the city, which was known to these two novices. To
them they related what they had seen in the night. Thereupon
they suffered themselves to be barred out, and each entering a
boat, they rowed to the most northern point, where they waited
for the ice to come. In the meantime said light came drifting
on the ice. They rowed up to itand saw that it stood on Jaapje
Maet. They took him into their boat, and brought him to the
other brethren who also kept themselves in a boat in the
field.* These took the body into their own boat. But as soon as
they touched it, in order to take it to the place where they
intended to bury it, the dried up and frozen body, which had
stood at the stake for thirteen weeks waiting to be burned,
burst, so that the blood flowed copiously into two or three
baskets which were at the bottom of the boat. The persons who
saw all this, and did as has been stated with his body, were
his chief brethren and associates; pious and credible persons,
who related it to many, in order that this miracle should never
be forgotten, but be remembered, to the edification of the
pious.</p>

<h2>MAERTEN ZAEYWEVER, JORIS OUDKLEERKOOPER,WILLEM
DROOGSCHEERDER, VICTOR AND PIETER DE BACKER, A. D. 1557</h2> 

<p>The bloodthirsty constrainers of conscience, not yet
satiated, apprehended at Antwerp, in the year 1557, five pious
Christians, namely, Maerten Zaeywever, Joris Oudkleerkooper,
Willem Droogscheerder, Victor and Pieter de Backer, whom they
assailed with many wiles, threats and tortures, in order to rob
them of their precious treasure, which they so faithfully kept
in earthen vessels, to the honor of God, that it could not be
taken from them; on which account the others were so filled
with envy, that they inflicted an ignominious death upon them,
publicly in the market place; but God will crown them, together
with His faithful servants, with great honor and joy, when the
others will have to go with shame into everlasting misery.</p>

<h2>A LETTER BY WILLEM DROOGSCHEERDER, WRITTEN<br />
IN PRISON AT ANTWERP, WHERE HE, WITH FIVE<br />
OTHERS, WAS PUT TO DEATH FOR THE TESTIMONY OF OUR LORD JESUS CHRIST,<br />
AS ALREADY STATED, A. D. 1557</h2> 

<p>Grace, peace, and mercy from God the Father, and our Lord
Jesus Christ, who has called us to His imperishable kingdom,
and chosen us before the foundation of the world, and cleansed
us with the washing of water by the Word, in order that we
should be blameless in His sight.</p>

<p>Written to you, my beloved brother N., and to my dear sister
N. Although I am here in fetters and bonds, for the testimony
of Christ, and am ready to seal it with my blood through the
grace of the Lord, yet I do not neglect or forget my fellow
members in my prayers, which I almost always offer with tears
before the Lord, since you are still traveling in the
wilderness, among dragons, lions and bears, which constantly
run and seek to murder the innocent blood, which cries for
vengeance from the time of Abel. For they bring us to death, as
the Jews did Christ; for we are grievous unto</p>

<br /><cite>*The reader will bear in mind that large
portions of Holland are traversed by numerous canals, in place
of roads.</cite> 

</div><div id="570"> 

<p>them to behold; because we do not conform to them; hence
they counsel and say, "Let us condemn him with a shameful death;
for by his own sayings he shall be respected." Wisd. 2:15.</p>

<p>Therefore, my chosen in the Lord, we will not be afraid of
their threats and blows, though they run like mad dogs. The
Lord holds their hearts in His hand; they cannot hurt a hair of
our head without the will of our Father. The Lord preserved the
three young men in the fiery furnace, Daniel in the den of
lions; Hezekiah in Jerusalem, Moses in Mesopotamia, Elijah in
the mountains; yea, all that trusted in the Lord, were never
confounded; for His mighty hand, says the prophet, is not
shortened; and though a mother should forsake her own child,
yet will I not forget thee, saith the Lord; for he that
toucheth you, toucheth the apple of Mine eye. Isa. 59:1; 49:15;
Zech. 2:8. Therefore let u5 prepare our souls for temptation:
our deliverance draweth nigh, and the day of tribulation is at
hand. II Esd. 16:74. Hence let us always sanctify and magnify
our Lord, that, we may inherit all the beautiful promises which
He has promised to the Christian people, so that we may not
become wearied or faint in our distress, but may be fervent in
spirit, rejoicing in hope, patient in tribulation, and
continuing instant in prayer. Heb. 13:3; Rom. 12:11, 12. When
Israel left Egypt, they rejoiced greatly, that they were
delivered from bondage; but when they came into the wilderness,
where it did not please the flesh, they were very discontented,
and murmured, so that they wanted to return, to which they had
no right, since they had taken all their possessions with them,
that they should have no cause to return. For this reason they
were not permitted to enter the promised land except Caleb and
Joshua; for these were of good courage, so that they destroyed
their enemies like a piece of bread.</p>

<p>The Lord was also with David, so that he slew the giant
Goliath. They girded a sword to his side to slay the giant with
it; but David was not accustomed to it, since he was a
shepherd, and he laid aside the sword, and took his sling, with
which he smote the giant on the head, so that the latter fell
to the ground, whereupon David took the giant's sword, and cut
off his head. Therefore, my chosen brethren and sisters in the
Lord, let us turn neither to the right, nor to the left, since
we have so great a King, who will not forsake us, if we remain
faithful to Him; He is so faithful that has promised it that I
cannot doubt it; for the city into which we shall come is full
of all good things, but it lies in humility. II Esd. 7:6.</p>

<p>Know, dear brother N., and sister N., that I give you a hymn
for remembrance, and will hereby commend you to the Lord, until
we come upon Mount Zion, and there sing the new song with all
God's chosen. II Esd. 2:42. Dear brother and sister, when I
composed this hymn, a great torment and temptation came upon
me, so that I was very sorrowful, and it seemed to me that the
Lord hadutterly forsaken me. I fell down upon my knees, and
wept bitterly before the Lord, and prayed for strength and
power. And the Lord heard my prayer and lifted me up again; for
He does not suffer us to be tempted above that we are able, and
will with the temptation make also a way to escape, that we may
be able to bear it. I Cor. 10:13. I then received such grace
and joy, that for joy I composed this hymn, to the edification
of my fellow men. Greet J. de H. much with the peace of the
Lord, and you, N., greet your master likewise much with the
peace of the Lord, and say good night to your wife; I cannot
offer her peace, for it is written, "Woe unto them that comfort men with a vain hope." Know,
dear friends, that I greatly rejoiced when I went to the court,
so that it seemed to me that there could be no joy like this,
that I should confess my Lord and God, before the world. The
bailiff asked me whether I was rebaptized. And the Holy Ghost
spake through my mouth and said that I was baptized according
to the doctrine of Christ, and that they were Anabaptists,*
since they baptize against Christ, hence the name by which you
call us, belongs to you. And I asked them to let me go to my
brethren, since we had the same faith, but they gave me no
answer. Thus, my dear friends, we will await you under the
altar.</p>

<h2>JERONYMUS, LAURENS VAN GUELDERS, PIETER<br />
THE MILLER, JACOB VAN YPERES AND MAERTEN THE WALLOON, A. D. 1557</h2> 

<p>In the same year, 1557, there were also apprehended at
Antwerp, five brethren of Christ, named Jeronymus, Laurens van
Guelders, Pieter the miller, Jacob van Yperes, and Maerten the
Walloon, who trusted so firmly in the promises of God, and were
so fervently united to the love of Christ, that they were not
to be drawn away therefrom by any man, nay, not even by great
promises, severe persecutions, perilous temptations, or
threatenings with the sword; for which reason all five were
beheaded in prison, for the testimony of their faith, and firm
adherence to the same; and even as they lost their heads for
the truth, so God shall set them as heads to convict and judge
those who judged them.</p>

<h2>MARGRIETE, WIFE OF JERONYMUS, KLAERKEN<br />
AND JANNEKEN OF DEXTELAER, A. D. 1557</h2> 

<p>In the year 1557, there were drowned in prison, at Antwerp,
three women, namely Margriete, wife of the afore-mentioned
Jeronymus, and Klaerken and Janneken of Dextelaer, because they
steadfastly adhered to the truth, and would not depart from it.
After being drowned, they were ignominiously thrown naked into
the Scheldt; but they shall be clothed, and enter in honor,
with their Bridegroom, to the marriage of the Lamb, where
they,</p>

<br /><cite>*The reader will understand this otherwise
obscure assertion, when we state that it is based upon an
ingenious application of the Dutch adverb "weder, weer," the
first part of the word "Weer doopers (Anabaptists),which
may mean "against" as well as "again."-Translator.</cite> 

</div><div id="571"> 

<p>together with all the chosen of God, shall joyfully sing the
new song, and live in eternal, imperishable joy.</p>

<h2>ALGERIUS, A YOUTH, A STUDENT OF PADUA, MISERABLY
BURNED FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS, AT ROME, A. D. 1557. A
CONSOLATORY LETTER FROM HIM.<br />
- AN ACCOUNT OF HIS SACRIFICE</h2> 

<p>To my beloved brethren and fellow servants of Jesus Christ,
who have gone out of Babylon unto mount Zion, whose names I do
not omit without cause, grace, peace and mercy from God our
Father, and the Lord Jesus Christ, our Lord and Saviour. Amen.
In order somewhat to sweeten or take away the pain which you
suffer on my account, I would communicate to you the sweetness
which I experience, that you may rejoice with me, and shout for
joy with thanksgiving in the presence of the Lord.</p>

<p>I will tell to the world an incredible thing, namely, that I
have found infinite sweetness in the bowels of the lion. And
who will in any wise believe what I am going to relate here?
Who can believe it?</p>

<p>In a dark hole I have found pleasure; in a place of
bitterness and death, rest and hope of salvation; in the abyss
or depths of hell, joy; where others weep, I have laughed;
where others fear, I have found strength; who will believe
this? In a state of misery I have had very great delight; in a
lonely corner I have had most glorious company, and in the
severest bond, great rest. All these things, my fellow brethren
in Jesus Christ, the gracious hand of God has given me. Behold,
He that at first was far from me, is now with me, and Him whom
I knew but a little, I now see clearly; to whom I once looked
from afar, Him I now behold as present; He for whom I longed,
now offers me His hand; He comforts me; He fills me with joy;
He drives from me bitterness, and renews within me strength and
sweetness; He makes me well; He sustains me; He helps me up; He
strengthens me. Oh, how good is the Lord, who does not suffer
His servants to be tempted above that they are able I Oh, how
easy, pleasant and sweet is His yoke I Is there any like God
the Most High, who sustains and refreshes those that are
tempted? He heals them that are bruised and wounded, and
restores them altogether. Isa. 41; 43:20. None is like Him.
Learn, most beloved brethren, how sweet the Lord is, how
faithful and merciful; who visits His servants in trial (Isa.
43:2); who humbles Himself and condescends to be with us in our
huts and humble abodes. He gives us a cheerful mind and peacef
ul heart.</p>

<br /><cite>*In this letter we found so much wisdom,
holiness, and excellence, that we have read it innumerable
times with attention and deep emotion. It kindled our love to
God, and our zeal, not only to live with Christ, but also, if
necessary, to die with Him and for His holy truth. Oh, that we
were worthy, that His holy name miglit be praised through us
unworthy creatures!</cite> 

<p>But will the blind world believe these things? No; she will
much rather say (since she is unbelieving), "You will not be
able long to endure the heat, cold and discomfort of this
place. And how then will you be able to bear the cross, the
thousandfold contempt, wrong reproaches, and undeserved
ignominy? Will you not regard your dear native country, the
riches of this world, your parents, rank and honor at the
court? Will you be able entirely to dismiss from your mind your
glorious learning, which strengthens and recreates for all
labor spent? Will you lose so much for nothing, yea, all the
labors you have undergone, your much watching, laboring and
assiduity? For what purpose have you labored and studied so
much, even from your very youth up?</p>

<p>But, last of all, have you then no fear at all of death,
which awaits you, though you are innocent? Oh, what extreme
folly and ignorance it is, to be able with a single word to
avoid all this, and to escape death, and yet you will refuse to
do it 1 Oh, what a despicable thing it is to be able to obtain
something from such excellent, just, God-fearing, wise and good
(or pious) councilors and illustrious men,* and voluntarily to
refuse to receive anything.</p>

<p>But hearken, ye blind and mortal men, what is hotter and
more intense than the fire which is prepared for you? What is
colder than your own heart, which is yet in darkness, and has
no light at all? John 1:5. What is harder and more confused and
restless than your life? What is more ignoble and repulsive
than your age? Tell me, my dear, what country or home is
sweeter than the heavenly? II Cor. 5:1. What treasure is
greater than eternal life? And who are our parents and friends,
except those alone who keep the Word of God? Where are greater
joy, riches, and honor than in heaven? Tell me, ye ignorant, is
not all learning given to know God, whom if we do not know in
truth, all' our labor, watching and exertion, yea, all our
undertakings are expended to no purpose? Answer me, ye unhappy
men: what comfort or balm can he have, who misses God, who is
the cure and refreshing of all? Ex. 15':26. How can he say that
I fear death, if he himself is dead in sins, and thus prefers
death to life? I Tim. 5:6. For if Christ is the way, the truth,
end the life, can life be found out of Christ? The heat is to
me a refreshing pleasure, and winter a joy in the Lord. I who
do not fear the burning of the fire, shall I be afraid of
simple heat? Is he tormented by ice, who consumes, melts, and
falls asleep in the love of God?</p>

<p>This place is indeed hard And severe for the guilty and
evildoers; but to the innocent and righteous it is very
pleasant and sweet; hence issues honey; hence flows the
heavenly drink; here wells up milk; here springs forth the
abundance of all good things.</p>

<p>It is true that this place is esteemed lonesome</p>

<br /><cite>*The powerful nobility or aristocracy of Venice
is meant here.</cite> 

</div><div id="572"> 

<p>and base; yet it is to me as a spacious valley, and one of
the most excellent places in the world.</p>

<p>Tell me, ye miserable men, whether I could have a pasture or
meadow more pleasant than this; for here I behold kings,
princes, states and nations; here I see war (or conflict);
these cut in pieces, the others victorious; some that have
fallen into low estate, others, who have attained to great
honors.</p>

<p>Here is Mount Zion; here I rise and enter into heaven; Jesus
Christ stands before my eyes; around me stand the fathers,
prophets, evangelists, apostles, and all the servants of God.
He (the Lord) embraces and nourishes me; these exhort me, those
show me holy things; these comfort me, others escort me with
music and song.</p>

<p>Shall I now say that I am alone, among so many? For here I
have whom I may take for companions, comforters and examples,
since I see some that are crucified, some beheaded; some
stoned; others cut in twain; some roastedl others fried in
pans, ovens, and chaldrons of oil; some whose eyes are put out;
others whose tongue is cut out; these with their skin pulled
over their head; others with hands and feet cut off; some that
are cast into fiery furnaces; others given as food to wild
beasts; yea, It would require too much time, were I to relate
it all.</p>

<p>Finally, I see still others, who have suffered manifold
tortures and martyrdoms, and this only because they now live
and are free from all pain. And for all these there is but one
remedy, one medicine, which can cure all their infirmities; and
this remedy gives to me also strength, and life, and
cheerfulness to suffer all these fears and afflictions, which
are but momentary, and not worth speaking of; this is the hope
which I have placed in heaven. I do not fear those who unjustly
revile and persecute me, since He that dwells in heaven, will
reject and extirpate them, but will heal and restore these. I
shall not be afraid if a thousand surround me; for the Lord my
God will always deliver me; He is my shield and protector; He
is my comfort; He is my head; He will beat down those who
oppose me without cause; He will break the teeth of sinners;
for salvation, blessing, might and dominion are His. Then
reproach which we suffer for Christ's sake giveg us nothing but
joy and gladness; for it is written, "If ye be reproached for
the name of Christ, happy are ye; for the Spirit of glory and
of God resteth upon you." I Pet. 4:16. If we, then, are so
assured of our salvation, we are not to regard the unjust
reproaches of those who revile us.</p>

<p>On earth I have no continuing city or place of rest; my home
and country are in heaven; I seek the new city of Jerusalem,
which I see before me, which comes to meet me. Behold, I am
already on the way; there is my sweet home, my riches, my
parents and my friends, my pleasure and my honor; I have no
fear that I shall miss them.</p>

<p>All these earthly things are but shadows; they are all
transient, and a vanity of vanities to those who miss the hope
and essence of eternal life.</p>

<p>The accomplishments, arts, or gifts which Godhas given me,
were at first pleasant companions and recreations; now they
yield me holy fruits. It is true, I have sweated, suffered
cold, and as much as I was able, watched night and day; but
this my labor has tended and redounded to make me more perfect;
there never passed a day or hour without some improvement.
Behold, the true countenance of God has been revealed over my
life, and the Lord has caused me to experience great joy in my
heart. In Him alone I shall rest in peace. I Pet. 1:8.</p>

<p>Who will now dare say that I have lost my age and years? Who
will say that I have lost my courage? For my soul has said, "The
Lord is my portion; therefore will I seek him." Lam. 3:24.
Hence since dying in the Lord is no dying, but leading a
blessed life, why then does a reprobate to God oppose me, to
prevent me from dying? All this will be the greatest joy, if I
only may taste the cup of the Lord. And what surer pledge of my
salvation could I find? Has He not said, "Men will do unto you
what they have done to me?" John 15:20. Therefore let this fool
keep silence, who has now so long deceived himself in the light
of the sun. Let the blind world cease, I say, to imagine such
things. For I will say with the apostle, "Neither tribulation,
nor distress, nor famine, nor nakedness, nor care, nor
persecution, nor sward shall be able to separate us from the
love in Christ. We are killed all the day long: we are led to
death like sheep for the slaughter." Romans 8:35, 36. Thus we
are partakers with Christ, who has said that the disciple is
not greater than his master, and the servant not more than his
lord. He also left us the command, that each should take up His
cross and follow Him.</p>

<p>Comfort yourselves, O most beloved fellow servants of God,
comfort yourselves, for we fall into manifold temptations. Let
our patience be perfect in every place, since these things are
promised us here on earth, for it is written that those who
kill us will think that thereby they are doing God a holy
service and sacrifice. John 16:2. Hence fear and death are only
parts and things which teach us to understand our calling, and
we rejoice in a future life, and shout joyfully in the Lord,
since we are (far from all sin) beaten, and delivered unto
death. For it is better to suffer for righteousness sake (if
thus it be the will of the Lord) than for evildoing. We have an
example in Christ, and the prophets, who spoke in the name of
the Lord, and the children of unrighteousness put them to death
according to their manner and custom. Behold what do we now?
Blessed are they that have continued steadfast 1! We rejoice in
our innocence and (Godgiven) righteousness. God will punish
them that persecute us.</p>

<p>I have been called a fool, since I do not conceal the
knowledge of God, and do not care whether I speak in secret or
openly; to which I could reply with a single word."O poor man,
who, or what are you, who do not see the sun, and never once
think of God's words."</p>

</div><div id="573"> 

<p>My dear, remember the words of Christ, "Ye are the light of
the world. A city that is set on a hill cannot be hid. Neither
do men light a candle, and put it under a bushel, but on a
candlestick; and it giveth light unto all that are in the
house." Matthew 5:14, 15. And in another place He says, "Ye
shall be brought before governors and kings, and others.
Therefore, fear not them which kill the body; but much rather
him which is able to kill the soul. Whosoever therefore shall
confess me before men, him will I confess also before my Father
which is in heaven." Matt. 10:18, 28, 32.</p>

<p>Since then the Lord has spoken so plainly of this subject,
by what authority then do they advise and seek to persuade me?
For I shall never forsake the counsel of God, and follow the
advice of men, since it is written, "Blessed is the man that
walketh not in the counsel of the ungodly, nor standeth in the
way of sinners, nor sitteth in the seat of the scornful." Ps.
1:1.</p>

<p>I shall never deny Christ, but will confess Him whenever it
is necessary. I shall not esteem my life more highly than my
soul; I shall not exchange the future for the present. Oh, how
little does he understand and know who thinks us to be in the
way of folly. Wisd. 5:4.</p>

<p>I do not deem it to be improper, though I do not please the
so-called most mighty, just, wise, merciful, good and
illustrious senators of this place, whose grace is offered me,
if I apostatize.</p>

<p>But since we are instructed by the apostles of the Lord,
that we must obey God rather than men, etc., therefore I do not
accept this grace of them.</p>

<p>I wish that they were more perfect in the sight of the Lord;
it is true, they are mighty here, but they should also perfect
themselves in the Lord; they are indeed just, but they are
still without Christ, who is the foundation of righteousness;
they are wise, but where the beginning of wisdom is, there is
also the fear of God; they are called merciful, but I wish that
they might be more patient or subdued in Christian charity;
they are good, but I wish them the foundation of goodness,
namely, the best and most high God; they are called
illustrious, but they have not accepted our Saviour, the most
illustrious.</p>

<p>Hear, therefore, O ye kings, and understand; learn, ye that
be judges of the ends of the earth; serve the Lord with fear,
and approach Him with trembling. Receive instruction, and
understand it, lest the Lord be angry, and ye perish from the
right way. Why do ye rage, O ye people; and ye nations, why do
ye imagine vain things against the Lord I Ye kings of the
earth, and ye princes, why are ye united together against
Christ, the Holy One of God? How long will ye seek lies, and
hate truth. Be converted, and turn to the Lord our God, and
harden not your hearts. For one cannot but know that he. who
persecutes God's servants, persecutes God Himself; since He has
said, "Whatsoever men shall do unto you, they shall do to me,
and not to you." Zech. 2:8.</p>

<p>But, my dear, pray tell me, in what manner I have deserved
to be condemned? Is it that I have not answered the most
illustrious senators, my lords, according to their pleasure? If
I have said anything, it was not I at all that said it, since
the Lord says that before the authorities it will not be us
that speak, but the Spirit of our Father which will be in us.
Matt. 10:30. Now, if the Lord is faithful and true, which He is
in truth, I am innocent. It was He who made me speak. And what
am I, that I could withstand the will of God? Acts 11:17.
Therefore, he that would reprove such words, reproves the Word
of the Lord, who worked in me. But if he thinks that the Lord
is not to be reproved, Oh, then let him not accuse me any more,
since I am innocent of this work; for I did what I would not, I
spoke what I thought not. But if the things which I have spoken
are not good and true, and this is found and proved to me, then
I will confess that they proceeded from me alone, and not from
God; but if I have said things that are good and proved, and
cannot with justice be reproved, whether we will or not, it
will have to be acknowledged that they proceeded from the Lord.
Now, if all this is so, who then will accuse ,me? The most wise
people? Who will condemn me? The most righteous judges (who are
nevertheless unwise and unjust)?</p>

<p>Do what you will. Shall the words of the Lord be made void?
Shall the Gospel be of account no longer? Certainly not; but
the kingdom of God shall be only the more precious and sweet to
the true Israelites, and come the sooner to the chosen of Jesus
Christ. But they who do such things, shall experience the great
judgment of God. They that kill the righteous shall not escape
unpunished. II Thess. 1:6.</p>

<p>O most beloved, lift up your eyes, and take to heart the
counsel of God. Not long ago the Lord showed you a sign of
pestilence, in order to lead you to repentance; but if this
will not be received, he will unsheathe the sword entirely, and
smite with the sword, pestilence and famine the people which
exalts the horn against Christ. May God, through His mercy,
avert this scourge from this place. To all believers their most
zealous servant, the imprisoned and bound Algerius.</p>

<p>Written in the most delightful pleasure garden of the
prison, called Leonia, the 12th of July, A. D. 1557.*</p>

<h2>HOW ALGERIUS WAS OFFERED UP</h2> 

<p>This Algerius,** though very young in years, was a student
from the kingdom of Naples, and studied at Padua, where a
brother who spoke his language came to him, of whom he
diligently inquired the way and the will of the Lord, listening
very earn-</p>

<br /><cite>*Some had given 1555 as the year, but this is an
error.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* Some old writers did not know that this youth,
Algerius shortly before his death, had, through baptism which
he received upon his faith, united with the cross-bearing
Church of the Anabaptists; hence they ignorantly ascribed to
him another religion.</cite> 

</div><div id="574"> 

<p>estly, and was forthwith baptized into the Lord's death,
which he immediately afterwards manfully and undauntedly as a
bold hero and young soldier of Christ, forcibly proved with the
deed, and sealed with his blood, and thus became like his
Master, since he was also, even as Christ, when He came up out
of Jordan, immediately assailed by the enemy, the tempter and
his instruments, and cast into prison, in which he went through
and endured many severe conflicts, but was always greatly
strengthened and comforted with great joy, by the Lord, whom he
had set before his eyes, as his present writing abundantly
shows, which he wrote in prison at Padua to the brethren in
Italy, to strengthen and comfort them in their sorrow, which
had come upon them on his account, because they were solicitous
for him as being a novice in the faith. But the Lord clothed
him with great power, and hence, through him, as one of His
chief weapons, glorified His name. For after many temptations,
he was sent to Venice, where the entire senate or nobility
tried to prevail upon him, as did the tempter finally try to do
with Christ, and meant, by solemn entreaties, flattery, and the
offer of all manner of worldly aid and friendship, certainly to
catch and alienate him, which was not one of the least darts;
but, as an immovable pillar, he rejected it all and despised it
for Christ's sake, in order that he might with Moses and Paul
win and keep Christ alone. Matt. 4:8; Eph. 6:16; Phil. 3:8;
Hebrews 11:26.</p>

<p>When they could not prevail upon him, though they tried for
a long time, he was therefore sent to Rome, and delivered to
the pope, where he finally, after severe and hard imprisonment,
offered up his life in great steadfastness, as a sweet savor,
to the Lord, very eagerly and joyfully following in the
footsteps of all his forefathers and the glorious confessors of
Christ; and thus he rightly partook of the sufferings of his
Lord and Master; yea, his end was crowned with great triumphant
praise even also by all his despisers, and thus the desired cup
was drained.</p>

<p>Many different means having been tried with him, he was at
last sentenced to be burnt, but not in the same manner as
others, who were, also on account of the faith, with shortened
pain, executed according to the Italian or French custom of
being first hanged and strangled, and then burnt. But this
pious Algerius was held in greater honor by the Lord Christ,
and for this reason also had to begin and bring to a triumphant
issue a far more exalted and honorable conflict.</p>

<p>Having been brought in a wagon to the place called Mercado,
a final attempt was made upon him. A Carthusian monk-in Rome
called Capadocines*, and holy <i>people-was appointed</i> to
take him in hand. The same constantly held a crucifix before
him, and admonished him, to remember once more, before his
departure, his Lord and Re-</p>

<br /><cite>*We are much inclined to the view that thin is
an error, and that the Capucins are meant.-Transl.</cite> 

<p>deemer, and not to die thus hardened and desperate in error.
At the same time he constantly held before his eyes the
crucifix, which Algerius vigorously pushed aside with his
hands, which had not been bound, as I understand, saying aloud
in his language, with his eyes lifted up to heaven, "My Lord and
God lives above in heaven." etc.</p>

<p>At this the spectators cried with a loud voice, and
said, "Oh, he struck it," meaning the crucifix."Oh, away, away
with him; he is utterly hardened and blinded, all is lost on
him." For at Rome it is thought something great, when these
Carthusians cannot convert one; hence they are generally
reserved for the last. Thereupon he was stripped to his waist,
and boiling oil was first poured over his head and bare body,
which good and pious Algerius patiently suffered, but doubtless
severely felt. He rubbed his hand over his face, and pulled off
the skin and the hair. Thereupon only was he burnt to ashes, an
unusual thing in Italy, since I have seen it with my own eyes,
that they were only roasted and singed in the fire, whereupon
the dead body was carried to the grave. But as has been said,
this blessed Algerius had to glorify our Lord and God much more
highly. To him and to the Lord Jesus Christ, who wrought this
through him, by the power of the Holy Ghost, be praise and
glory forever. May He help us poor and weak mortals to follow
Him. Amen. Yes, O Lord Jesus, Amen.</p>

<p>Brother Da. Gr., who wrote this account, as the old copy
shows, also writes, "This was done with him in the year 1557, a
little while before I came to Rome, since at that time Algerius
was still on everybody's tongue. I have also heard with my own
ears, from the mouth of some who counted themselves good
papists and witnessed his execution, how wonderfully steadfast
he died; and that he truly believed in his heart what he there
in his severe martyrdom and pain confessed with his mouth
before all the people. Hence there is no doubt but he ascended
immediately to heaven, and was saved. Thus must the adversaries
bear testimony to the saints of God, even against their will.
Deut. 32:31.</p>

<p>Shortly afterwards, the flood occurred at Rome, when the
Tiber overflowed, and did great damage, so that some Romans say
that Rome suffered as much damage as if it had been plundered
with haste; which I for my part, found to be true indeed,
having never seen a greater famine of bread. It is impossible
for me to tell how fearful the sight and distress was,
especially among the poor people. But they do not recognize
that it was a just [recompense]. Wisd. 19:13.</p>

<br />

<h1>KONRAD SCHUMACHER, A. D. 1558</h1>

<p>In this year a young brother by the name of Konrad
Schumacher left Swabia with his people, and was apprehended at
Stein, near Krems on the Danube, taken to Vienna, and there
delivered into the hands of the authorities. There he lay in
prison</p>

</div><div id="575"> 

<p>a year and several weeks, for the faith and the divine
truth. In the prison he suffered great want and hunger among
the thieves and other malefactors, of whom there were several
imprisoned with him. Nothing was given them, except what others
brought and gave to them. Besides, when these malefactors had
been tortured, as is customary, they treated him most
shamefully, so that he suffered great hunger, before he could,
get something to eat, when they even had something. Thus he had
to suffer much misery in prison, aside from the tyranny.</p>

<p>About this time Emperor Ferdinand attended a great diet at
Augsburg, during which time the Bishop of Vienna had the
brother brought before him twice, each time in the early
morning before daylight, and was intending to have him executed
in the house. The first time they brought him forth, and
briefly examined him; and wanted him to tell whether he would
desist from his faith or not. He briefly answered and said that
they should not expect such a thing, since he would die in his
belief; that it was the truth, and the way to eternal life, and
this he should confess with his mouth as long as there should
be strength enough in him. Now their intention was frustrated,
so that they could accomplish nothing that day, only that they
disputed with him from early morning until noon, whereupon they
remanded him to prison, saying that he should consider the
matter for three days longer, and then tell them what he would
do. After three days they again brought him forth, early in the
morning, before daylight, and led him before the bishop and his
monks and priests, before whom he most faithfully defended the
truth. The executioner was also at hand, waiting without,
thinking to behead him early, before any people should come;
for they feared lest the truth should come to light, and the
people learn that injustice was being done him. But the Lord
again hindered them, so that he was brought back to prison. In
the meantime, however, the priests disputed much with him, and
gave him no rest.</p>

<p>After this they threatened to put him into a filthy tower,
which had not had an occupant for eight years, where he should
end .his life. He said that he would bide it, and would put his
trust in the Lord, who was well able to deliver him out of the
filthy tower, and.from all their power; he thought, however,
that the Lord had accepted him for a witness of the truth.</p>

<p>He showed himself so undaunted in everything that many of
them were astonished at him. Others said they would try
something new with him, whereby they should certainly frighten
him enough. In the meantime King Maximilian's steward
admonished the bishop for the best, and also spoke of the
matter to the Lutheran preachers of the king, who then told it
to the king, and spoke most favorably of the matter, saying
that he was very young yet, and that it would be a pity to put
him to death on account of the faith. Thereupon King Maximilian
concluded to free him from further tyranny and suffering,
whereupon he was released from prison, and thus returned in
peace to his brethren and his church.</p>

<h2>EXAMINATION, TORTURE, AND SENTENCE OF ANNETGEN ANTHEUNIS, STIJNTGEN JANS, EVERT<br />
NOUTS, AND PIETER VAN EYNOVEN, AT<br />
ROTTERDAM, IN THE YEAR 1558*</h2> 

<p class="c8">On the 20th of February, 1558 stilo coj., in
presence of Adriaen Fijck, Adriaen Adriaens, Adriaen Robberts,
Pieter Hendricks, Cornelis Joosten, and Willem Muylwijck,
judges, there was orally examined, Annetgen Antheunis, aged
over thirty years, born at Buuren.</p>

<p>She says that she always lived at Buuren, except one year
that she resided here in the city, which she afterwards left,
but returned about last St. Victor's day, and has since resided
here until the present time.</p>

<p>She says that she did not inquire the name of the people
where she formerly worked.</p>

<p>She says that she and another woman, named Stijntje van Ick,
or Maurick near Buuren, have lived here in the city since St.
Victor's day, and that she came here with said woman, from
Buuren.</p>

<p>She says that Evert is from Antwerp, and that he came to her
yesterday, at the house where she was apprehended.</p>

<p>She says that she learned to know said Evert only about two
or three months ago, and that he came in the daytime, to the
house of Arent Willems, in the woodyard, to buy a cheese.</p>

<p>She says that she did not go to confession either at last
Easter or Christmas.</p>

<p>She says that she observes all that God has commanded.</p>

<p>She says that she was baptized according to the command of
the Lord, but does not know the exact day; but that it took
place at the house of the aforesaid Axent Willems, in the
woodyard, and that she did not inquire the name of him that
baptized her.</p>

<p class="c8">On the 20th of February o f said year, in the
presence of the above-mentioned, there was orally examined, one
Jan Hendricks, of Utrecht, aged 28 or 29 years.</p>

<p>He says that he has lived here in the city since Bamessche,
in the house of Maritgen Jancheelen, in the fishmarket, and
last in Willem Reyer's house, where he was apprehended.</p>

<p>He says that at Dordrecht he lived near Starke Neele.</p>

<p>He says that he does not want to tell where or from whom he
heard the doctrine.</p>

<p>He says that he thinks much of the sacrament, but nothing of
the sacrament of the priests, and that, since he embraced this
doctrine, he has never been to the sacrament.</p>

<br /><cite>*Extracted from a certain book of criminal
sentences of the city of Amsterdam.</cite> 

</div><div id="576"> 

<p>He says that he was baptized since he believed, a certain
time ago, and that he does not wish to tell when, where, or by
whom it was done.</p>

<p>He says that his child was washed a little by the priest,
but does not want to tell when.</p>

<p class="c8">On the aforesaid day, in the presence of the
aforesaid judges, there was orally examined, Stijntgen fans,
aged 40 years, from Maurik, in Guelderland.</p>

<p>She says that she has been here in the city about two or
three years, with Annetgen Theunis, and that they lodged in the
woodyard, and afterwards resided in a house where lace is made,
and which stands behind a stable.</p>

<p>She says that she has no faith in the sacrament which the
priests administer, but esteems the sacrament as God has
instituted it, and that she cannot believe in the sacrament of
the church, because she cannot comprehend it.</p>

<p>She says that she was baptized at a certain time, not yet
twelve years ago, and not here in this city, but at
Utrecht.</p>

<p class="c8">On the same day, and in the presence of the
above, there was orally examined, one Evert N'outs o f Antwerp,
aged about 27 years.</p>

<p>He says that it is about three months since he came here
into this city, and that he lodged for a time in the woodyard,
and wove lace near the house called the Falcon.</p>

<p>He says that he believes in the sacrament so far as the
Scriptures speak of it, but does not believe that God is in the
sacrament of the altar, since the Scriptures do not assure him
of this; but he believes concerning it in this manner that it
is so, as far as it goes.</p>

<p>He says that he was baptized according to the doctrine of
Christ, a little over three years ago, just outside of Antwerp,
in a certain place, by one Gillis of Aix-la-Chapelle, as he
heard him called, who was executed this summer at Antwerp.</p>

<p class="c8">On the same day, and in presence of the
abovementioned judges, there was orally examined one Pieter van
Eynoven, born at Antwerp; aged 28 years.</p>

<p>He says that he has worked here in the city, at his trade of
silk weaving, since fourteen days before Christmas, in the
house of one Christian, whose wife is named Anneken.</p>

<p>He says that he believes on the foundation of the apostles
and prophets.</p>

<p>He says that he believes that the administration of the
sacrament in the church is, a great abomination before God.</p>

<p>He says that he was baptized according to the doctrine of
Christ, about two years ago, but does not want to tell by whom
or where it was done.</p>

<p class="c8">On the 19th of March, 1558, stilo coj. in the
presence of Adriaen Fijck Dirks van Hove, Adriaen Adriaens,
Adriaen Robbertszoon, Pieter van Neck Hendricks, Cornelis
loosten, Willem Corneliss Muylwijk, and Dirk Dirks, judges,
there was examined by torture, in the morning, at six o'clock,
in the city hall, Pieter van Eynoven, born at Antwerp, aged
about 28 years.</p>

<p>Pieter, when tortured on the rack, said that he was baptized
at Antwerp, about two years ago, by one Leendert, whose surname
he does not know,</p>

<p>nor whence he is, and he had never seen him, except when he
baptized him.</p>

<p>He says that several others, whose names he does not know,
were present when he was baptized.</p>

<p>When asked concerning the women with whom he spoke at the
time of his apprehension, he said that he did not know where
they were going, or who they were.</p>

<p>He says that he who baptized them, is called a teacher among
them.</p>

<p>He says that before he was baptized he had heard that he had
to live according to the command of Christ, and that he took a
Bible and Testament, and read therein, and found that it was as
had been told him; but he does not know the names of those who had
previously instructed him herein, because they often do not
inquire the names of others, nor want to know them, so as not to bring their brethren into
trouble.</p>

<p>He says that his master, Christian, and his wife, had the
same faith as he, but does not know whether they are
baptized.</p>

<p class="c8">Jan Hendricks of Utrecht, aged 28 years, severely
tortured on the rack.</p>

<p>He says that he was baptized by one Leenert, but does not
know whence he is, nor had he ever seen him previously, and
that he was baptized by him here in the city, in the woodyard,
a year and a half ago.</p>

<p>He says that his child was baptized by the priest, at the
font, at Dortrecht, and that no others whom he knows were
present when he was baptized.</p>

<p class="c8">Stijntgen Tans, aged about 40 years, of
Utrecht</p>

<p>Stijntgen says that he who baptized her is named Leenert,
and that it took place in Utrecht, five or six years ago, in
the house of one Gerrit, and that she does not know the surname
of the aforesaid</p>

<p>Leenert, nor whence he is, because they do not inquire nor
have much desire to know the names</p>

<p>or surnames of their fellow members, so as not to bring them
into trouble.</p>

<p>She says that others were baptized with her, but she did not
know them.</p>

<p>The judges being .all assembled, resolve to postpone the
matter of the aforesaid prisoners to a limited day, until the
executioner's .return, in order that said prisoners shall
consider the matter, and that it may be seen whether they can
be induced by kind means: and that they shall then comply
with</p>

</div><div id="577"> 

<p>the wishes of the bailiff, by expediting the matter and
justice, if the judges are all at home.</p>

<p><i>On the 28th of</i> March.-The judges resolve, since
Cornelis Joosten and Dirk Dirks, judges, are not at home, to
postpone the case of the aforesaid prisoners, until the former
return.</p>

<p>The bailiff protests costs and interests, since the judges
will not consent to limit a day for said prisoners.</p>

<p>The judges protest and say that since Cornelis JOosten and
Dirk Dirks, of their number, are absent, and they have agreed
together to be present in full number to consider the case of
said prisoners, they adhere to their former decision.</p>

<p><i>On the 26th of March all</i> that they had orally
confessed at torture was read to the aforesaid five prisoners,
who publicly, in front of the city hall, acknowledged it to be
true, in the sight of everyone, and a day, namely, Monday, the
28th of March, was limited for them, by the bailiff, Gerrardt
van der Mersche. Done as stated above, in presence of Adriaen
Fijck, Adriaen Adriaens, Adriaen Robbrechts, Pieter Hendricks,
Cornelis Joosten, William Corneliss, and Dirk Dirks,
judges.</p>

<p class="c8"><i>Sentence of Death, on the</i> 28th of
<i>March, 1558, stilo Col.</i></p>

<p>According to the written laws pursuant to the decrees of his
Imperial Majesty, confirmed by his Royal Majesty, who will have
them observed in all their points and articles; and through the
demand of the bailiff, and the confession of the prisoners,
Evert Nouts, Pieter van Eynhoven, both of Antwerp, and Jan
Hendricks of Utrecht, said prisoners shall be executed
according to the decree. Done in the presence of Adriaen Fijck,
Adriaen Adriaens, Adriaen Robbrechts, Pieter Hendricks,
Cornelis Joosten, Willem Corneliss, and Dirk Dirks, judges, and
Sir Roeland, pensionary.</p>

<p>In regard to Stijntgen Jans and Annetgen Antheunis, decision
of their case is deferred for certain reasons, the judges
moving postponement until after Easter.</p>

<p>NOTE.-On the 28th of March, 1558, stilo coj., after the
above sentence had been pronounced by Matthijs Oark, the
secretary, and the aforesaid prisoners had been condemned to be
executed with fire, all the necessary preparations were made
here before the city hall; three large stakes were placed near
together, at which to strangle said prisoners first, before
burning them; and the place having been shut off with planks
and stakes, it was proclaimed in the name of the bailiff,
magistrate, burgomasters and judges, in front of the city hall,
with the striking of the bell, that every one should leave the
ring, on pain of forfeiting his upper garment; and that no one
should hinder or resist justice by word or act, on pain of life
and property. Between eleven and twelve o'clock, every
preparation necessary for the execution having been made, the
aforesaid Jan Hendricks was first brought out to be executed,
and placed at the middle stake upon alittle stool, and a cord
put around his neck, to strangle him. Thereupon Master Aert,
the young constable, as substitute for Master, Jan van
Haarlem,the executioner from behind, twisted said cord tight
with a stick, and then took away the little stool from under
Jan Hendricks' feet, and while thus hanging pulled him with all
his might by his body and legs; whereupon said Master Jan came
with a bundle of oat straw, into which a quantity of gunpowder
had been put, and held it before his face, to singe it; but
Master Aert had a pair of tongs with a red-hot coal, to cast
into the gunpowder. He threw it three or four times, without
being able to touch the gunpowder, so that the straw smoked,
but the powder was not ignited.</p>

<p>In consequence of this a great cry arose, one saying, "You
throw the fire badly;" another, "You inflict a thousand deaths
upon the man;" and finally,"Stone the constable to death," and
the like. Then a woman threw a slipper, and others of the
bystanders began to throw stones at the constable. Master Hans
was then pushed by the citizens, into the house of Jan Sampel,
in the Golden Waggon, opposite the City Hall and concealed;
while the young constable, called Master Aert, together with
the servants of the procurator-general, also of Schielandt, and
of this city, who had been summoned to the assistance of
justice, fled into the city hall, followed by Gerrit van der
Mersche, the bailiff; leaving said Jan Hendricks still
suspended by the cord. The judges, the pensionary, and the
secretary, seeing the great tumult and uproar, took refuge up
in the square of the city hall tower. The first ones who
arrived there were Adriaen Robberts, the judge, and Matthijs
Bark, the secretary, who, from the square of the tower, saw Jan
Hendricks still hanging at the stake. With great violence the
planks were torn off, and the stakes pulled out, from the
enclosure that had been erected to keep the people from getting
to the officers of justice. A lad then came and passed the
stake, intending to cut the cord by which said Jan had been
strangled; but he did not venture to do it, whereupon another
came, who cut the cord, so that Jan fell to the ground. And as
the perpetrators of this crime were mostly strangers, the
citizens who lived in the neighborhood, locked their doors. The
bailiff, together with the servants of the procurator-general,
and of Schielandt, barricaded the front of the city hall with
benches, planks, and other wood, in order to keep the two
others that had been sentenced, and the women. But as the
tumult and uproar increased more and more, the rioters pulled
out the stakes, and other stakes f rom the street, and came
with violence before the door of the city hall, in order to
force it open. The door, however, being firmly barricaded, they
went with the stakes upon the hospital stairs, and forced open
the back door of the city hall, which leads to the chamber of
Schielandt, and the treasury. Hearing this, the bailiff and his
servants, who were there with the prisoners, left the two women
behind, since Annetge was a crip-</p>

</div><div id="579"> 

<p>ple, and not able to walk, and took the other two prisoners
that had been sentenced, and fled with them from the lower part
of the city hall up into the tower. The rioters thus forced
open the front as well as the rear of the city hall, broke the
doors in pieces, and first took the aforesaid two women,
brought them without the city, and led them away. Thereupon
they returned into the front of the city hall, and smashed in
the door leading up into the tower, calling and crying, aloud
for the two men prisoners; or they would kill them all, and set
the tower on fire; so that the servants released said
prisoners, whom the rioters then brought without the city.</p>

<p>After this they cried as loud as ever, and demanded the
young constable, and also the bailiff and the members of the
court. And as the servants were in a story of the tower below
the one occupied by the lords of the court, they told the
rioters aloud that the lords and the constable had already left
the city hall. Deeper silence could not have reigned in a
convent, than prevailed at this time among the lords; for
though some did not make an outward manifestation of the regret
which they felt in their hearts, he that had sharp eyes, could
read it in their face. And though it was past noon, and no one
had eaten much that day, yet I believe, if there had been an
abundance of the most tempting viands, none would have made
very great inroads upon them.</p>

<p>But at last, God be praised for it, the tumult and uproar
ceased; so that through the faithfulness of Adriaen Jacobs
Tromper, councilor of said city, who had left the ark, but
returned with an olive twig, and informed the lords of the
court, in their anxiety, that the uproar had subsided, and that
the rioters had all gone away. Thus, about two o'clock in the
afternoon, the lords left the tower; but the city was still in
great commotion, and Jan Hendricks, the prisoner that had been
cut down, was brought into the house of one Kers Goverts
Brouwer, near the city hall, where he remained until about five
or six o'clock in the evening, when he was openly put into a
boat, and taken out of the city, and it is said that he is
still living.</p>

<p>That evening the arquebusiers were ordered on guard. The
next day; the 29th of March, a delegation went in behalf of the
city to the Hague, to the lords of the council, where they
reported the matter, presented an excuse in behalf of the city,
and requested that commissioners be sent to inquire into the
matter, that the city might be exculpated from the uproar. Next
day, Sir Guiljand Zeegers, Lord van Wassenhoven, and Sir
Christian de Waert, procurator-general, arrived here, and made
some inquiries concerning the crime, and reported the
information obtained to the council. His Royal Majesty, having
been informed that full control had been gained over the city,
speedily dispatched (since my lord the margrave van Veere was
sick) the count of Boussu and my lord of Cruyningen, who passed
through here secretly, on Easter eve, on their way to the
Hague, where they, on EasterDay, convened the whole council.
They wrote to the bailiff, to close the gates and bars, and to
fetch those who had been designated and reported, from their
beds, in the night; which was done after the close of Easter
Day, and there was apprehended in the night, with the
assistance of the arquebusiers, and in presence of the
burgomasters, one Chiele Pot. On the following day, the second
Easter Day, there arrived in the city the Count of Boussu, my
lord of Cruyningen, Sir Gerrit van Assendelft, President of the
Council, Guiljand Zeegers, lord of Wassenhoven, Sir Cornelis
Zuys, Aernoult Sasbout, Cornelis van Weldam, and Dominicus
Boot.</p>

<p><i>On the 21st of April, 1558, after Easter</i></p>

<p>Whereas Jacob Theunis, <i>alias</i> Mosselman, born at
Rotterdam, at present a prisoner, has confessed, without
torture and iron bonds, before the count of Boussu, knight of
the order of the Golden Fleece, the lord of Cruyningen, as
commissaries from his Royal Majesty, and the court-of Holland;
that he, the prisoner, after the tumult and uproar in this city
of Rotterdam had taken place, went to the city hall, to see
what was going on there, and that as he ascended the steps of
the city hall, a crutch was thrown at his neck, whereupon he
picked it up, went with it into the city hall, where the
servants were still in the tower, and threw it up from below at
the servants; all of which are things of bad example, and must
not go uncorrected, but must be punished, as a warning example
unto others; therefore, the aforesaid court, after mature
deliberation, in the name of the King of Spain, of England, of
France, etc., as Count of Holland, Zeeland and Vriesland, has
condemned and does sentence by these presents, the aforesaid
prisoner Jacob Theunis, to appear in audience, and there to
ask, with uncovered head, on his knees, the forgiveness of the
court, on behalf of his Royal Majesty and justice, and to
declare that he is sincerely sorry that he threw the crutch at
the servants, in the city hall: and that after this is done, he
is to be brought upon the scaffold erected in front of the city
hall of this city, and to remain standing there until after the
execution of the rioters. Done at Rotterdam by Sir Geraerdt van
Assendelft, Emskerk, etc., first president of the council,
Guiljand Zeegers, lord of Wassenhoven, etc., knight, Sir
Cornelis Zuys, Aernout Sassebout, Cornelis van Weldam,
Dominicus Boot, Damas van Drogendijk, Quintijn Weytszoon, and
Aernout Nicolai, Councilors of Holland, and pronounced on the
21st of April, 1558, after Easter.</p>

<p>Whereas Avicenna Jans, born at Delft, at present a prisoner,
has confessed, without torture and iron bonds, before the count
of Boussu, Knight of the Golden Fleece, and the lord of
Cruyningen, as commissaries of his Royal Majesty and the court
of Holland, that he, the prisoner, at the time of the tumult
and uproar which recently occurred in this city of Rotterdam,
stood at the house of Kors Goverts Brouwer, and that after said
uproar was</p>

</div><div id="579"> 

<p>almost over he, intending to go home, in his consternation
went eastward, and again passed the house of the aforesaid
Kors, and having seen that the condemned and strangled man, who
had been cut down from the stake at which he had been
strangled, was brought to the house of the aforesaid Kors
Goverts, he, the prisoner also went into the house; and that,
while the strangled man was yet lying in the street near the
door, and because some of the other bystanders had said to
him"Take the man (meaning the strangled man) further back," he,
the prisoner, also seized hold of him; and that after the
strangled man had been lifted up and carried into the house,
he, since some had told him to see whether there was yet life
in the strangled man, tapped the soles of his feet, and
afterwards, in the evening, returned home from the aforesaid
house-</p>

<p>Here the account in said book of criminal sentences abruptly
ends; so that it remains uncertain what was further done in the
matter.</p>

<br />

<h1>THOMAS VAN IMBROECK, THE 5TH OF MAY, IN THE 
YEAR 1558</h1>

<p>At- Cologne, on the Rhine, a God-fearing brother, named
Thomas van Imbroeck, a printer's servant, was apprehended for
the truth, in the year 1557, and imprisoned in a tower. When
afterwards examined in regard to baptism and marriage, he met
them with the Word of God, in such a manner that they desisted
from examining, him further and put him into another tower.
<i>His</i> wife wrote him a letter exhorting him to fight
valiantly, and to adhere firmly to the truth. For these
comforting words he affectionately thanked her, and showed by
many Scriptures that the righteous have always suffered, and
that he stood with a good conscience void of offense before
God, to follow them, forsake wife, children, and all visible
things, and take up the cross of Christ, and follow Him, for
which he prayed God that he might be found worthy. Afterwards
there came to him two priests, who disputed with him concerning
infant baptism; but they disagreed among themselves; for the
one would have that the infants that died unbaptized were
damned, while the other admitted that they were saved. They
insisted that he should become converted. But he said, "That,
which I maintain, the Scriptures have taught me, and if any one
will teach me a better way from the Scriptures, I will gladly
follow him." They said, "You despise our church, and refuse to
be taught by us." He replied, "That I condemn your church and do not come under your
communion, is for the reason that you do not keep your church
pure; for perjurers, whoremongers, and the like are pious
brethren among you." They also asked him why he did not have
his .children baptized. He answered, "The Scriptures teach no
infant baptism, and those that are to be baptized according to
the Word of God, must first believe." Then they said that he
was aheretic, but were not able to prove it. He was then
brought to the rack, where he was sharply examined, but not
tortured, though the executioner had everything ready for it;
for the lords were not agreed among themselves. This happened
three different times. After this he was brought into the house
of the count, who would gladly have set him at liberty had he
not so greatly feared the imperial decree and the displeasure
of the bishop. Thomas, however, was bold, of good cheer, and
ready to lay clown his life for the name of Christ, and to
adhere so firmly to the truth and the love of God, that neither
fire, water, sword, nqr any other thing should move him
therefrom. When they took him away from the house of the count,
he suffered much temptation all night from the count's people
and others, who undertook to teach and instruct him, but all in
vain; for they were such as were themselves not instructed or
taught of God.</p>

<p>Finally he was brought before the high court, where he was
condemned to death, in presence of the count, who then; for the
first time, pronounced judgment, staining his staff with
Christian blood. Thus he was beheaded, as a pious witness of
Jesus Christ, for his steadfast continuance in the faith, on
the 5th day of March, 1558, being twenty-five years old.</p>

<p>From his prison he wrote letters to his wife and brethren,
and also a confession of his faith regarding baptism, of which
a special book has been published, all of which is very
instructive and comforting for the God-fearing, as you shall
see by the following part, which is here presented to you.</p>

<h2><i>A letter by Thomas van Imbroeck, written
from.</i><br />
<i>prison to his wife and brethren</i></h2> 

<p>Much grace and peace from God the heavenly Father, who is a
true Father; for He shows His fatherly faithfulness to all His
children, according to His promise, when He says, "I will be a
Father unto them, and they shall be my sons and daughters." May
this Father so speak to your hearts, that you may believe me
with a good conscience, that you are His children, and it will
not fail you.</p>

<p>This grace I wish you, my dear wife, and also the wife of my
Lord (you understand whom I mean), through the Author and
Finisher of life, Jesus, to whom alone we must take refuge,
that we may become conformed to Him in this world, according to
the words of the prophet, who says, "He hath no form nor
comeliness; and when we shall see him, there is no beauty that
we should desire him. He is despised and rejected of men; a man
of sorrows, and acquainted with grief, and we hid as it were
our faces from him." Isa. 53:2, 3.</p>

<p>But what says the Scripture, "Wherefore God also hath highly
exalted him, and given him a name which is above every name . .
. and that every tongue should confess that Jesus Christ is
Lord to the glory of God the Father."</p>

<p>Hence I deem it necessary for us, O wife of the Lord, to
reflect on this; for though we are now the</p>

</div><div id="580"> 

<p>reproach of .all men, yea, as the filth and offscouring of
everyone, so that they say, "Away with him. for he is not fit to
live;" they shall in due time confess and say, "Behold, how are
they now numbered among the children of God and their lot is
among the saints. We accounted their life madness, and their
end to be without honor." Wisd. 3:5, 4. Now we sigh, but when
He shall come for whom we wait; then they shall sigh, and be
distressed with great pain; who shall be without hope; for
their worm shall never die, and their fire shall not be
quenched.</p>

<p>Hence, there is a great difference between the pious and the
ungodly; for the souls of the righteous are in the hands of
God, and there shall no torment touch them, for their hope is
full of immortality. Wisd. 3:1, 4.</p>

<p>This, my brethren, we are to consider well; for if we look
back, we still look upon deadly or mortal things, and there
cannot apply to us the comforting words of Paul, where he
says, "Our light affliction, which is but for a moment, worketh
for us a far more exceeding and eternal weight of glory; while
we look not at the things which are seen, but at the things
which are not seen." II Cor. 4:17, 18.</p>

<p>Now I know that wife and children are visible, and though
they are dear to me, yet I will count them but dung, and
say, "Henceforth know I no roan after the flesh; but the
knowledge of the spirit abideth forever." Phil. 3:8; II Cor.
5:16. And thus I hope to know you all when we shall appear
together in the eternal joy, which is prepared from the
beginning for them that are not ashamed of Christ; but this is
not to be ashamed, when we, as malefactors, go without the
gate, for Christ's sake, and help Him bear His reproach,
without the camp. Heb. 12:13.</p>

<p>Hence I desire that the rich seek no excuse, and say, "Yea, I
cannot forsake everything, it would create great wonderment and
sensation before the world, if I should so completely forsake
my rank." Yea, they should imagine that they were doing too
much in this. Ah no! He who is over all, God blessed forever,
humbled Himself much more than this; for He was King over all,
and Lord of the whole world, even as David in spirit calls Him
Lord: He came not to be ministered unto, but to minister unto
all; for He became the servant of us. all, that He might make
us free. Rom. 9:5; Phil. 2:7; I Tim. 6:15; Rev. 17:14; Matt.
20:28; John 8:36.</p>

<p>If we therefore have received freedom through Him, let us be
grateful, and not cast it from us; for it has a great reward,
though some say we ought not to serve God for the reward. This
view, I say, is not right; for I say with Paul, "If in this life
only we have hope in Christ, we are of all men most miserable."
I Cor. 15:19.</p>

<p>Yet, let no one think, that he shall be justified and saved
by his good works alone; for this we must wholly ascribe to the
grace of God, and tothe merits and innocently shed blood of our
Lord Jesus Christ, who works the good in us.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear brethren, beware of such spirits; for
they would experience greater perfection, but fail in those
things which are least. Adhere to the doctrine you have
learned. One thing I desire and request: that the simple may be
better and more thoroughly instructed, lest your labor be
burned in the fire; for the scripture says not in vain, "In that
he himself hath suffered being tempted, he is able to succor
them that are tempted," for experience brings perfect wisdom,
even as Paul says."Blessed be . . . the Father of mercies and
the God of all comfort, who comforteth us in all our
tribulation, that we may be able to comfort them which are in
any trouble, by the comfort wherewith we ourselves are
comforted of God. For, as the sufferings of Christ abound in
us, so our consolation also aboundeth by Christ"; yea, through
Him, I say, we shall gain the victory; for He is our life, and
to die is gain for us, since He says, "Though you were dead, yet
shall you live." Heb. 2:18; II Cor. 1:3-5; John 11:25; II Tim.
2:11.</p>

<p>Hence it is good to die with Christ; for He was raised up by
the glory of His Father, and, hence, will draw unto Him all
that the Father has given Him. Rom. 6:4; John 12:32. Therefore,
my brethren, and my dear wife, let us be valiant; for the
apostle says, "My strength is made perfect in weakness." II Cor.
12:9. Hence I deem it good, to be in weakness, (mark) if it be
followed by being in reproach, distress, persecution, and fear
for Christ's sake.</p>

<p>Yea, if the Lord should count me worthy to testify with my
blood- to His name, how greatly would I thank Him, for I hope
not only to bear these bonds with patience, but also to die for
Christ's sake, that I may finish my course with joy; for I
would rather be with the Lord, than live again in this
abominable, wicked world; however, His divine will be done.
Amen.</p>

<p>And if anything should be defective yet in my life, that I
may not have been diligent enough (which I confess), may the
Lord blot it out and purge it, through the fire of His love and
mercy, in the blood of Jesus Christ through which everything
must be purified, and purged. I John 1:7.</p>

<p>Dear brethren, I desire that you will all pray to God for
me, that He will keep us through Jesus Christ, our Lord and
Saviour. Amen.</p>

<h2>Another letter by Thomas van Imbroeck, written in
prison to his wife</h2> 

<p>May grace, peace and mercy from God the heavenly Father, and
the pure love of His Son Jesus Christ, be perfect in your
heart, my dear wife, that you may thereby be drawn from all
visible things, to the invisible and eternal, through the help
and co-operation of His Holy Spirit, who is the Governor and
Guide of the children of God; to Him be glory and praise
forever and ever, Amen.</p>

</div><div id="581"> 

<p>Blessed be the God and Father of our Lord Jesus Christ for
His great and unspeakable grace, which He has imparted to us
through His gracious goodness, and has drawn us into the
kingdom of His Beloved Son, through whom we have received
redemption from all our sins, in His blood. Eph. 1:3.</p>

<p>Hence it is right and just that we ought not to cease
constantly to serve Him with great humility as grateful and
obedient children, and not disesteem the grace which has been
given us, but diligently consider why and for what purpose it
has been given us, namely, that we should use it and get gain
by it, that we may hear the sweet voice which says, "Well done, thou good and faithful servant, thou hast been
faithful over a few things, I will make thee ruler over many
things." Matt. 25:21.</p>

<p>Be admonished by this, that the merchant sold all that he
had, and bought the field in which lay the treasure. Matt.
13:44. Thus you should also think now, that you willingly give
your husband to the Lord, like Jephtha, who offered up his
daughter to the Lord; or remember also Abraham, the pious
father of all the faithful, who did not become weak in faith,
but willingly delivered up his son Isaac to show obedience to
the mighty God, who gives life and breath to all men, Judg.
11:39; Heb. 11:17.</p>

<p>Remember also patient job, who in his trial with all
meekness said, "Naked came I out of my mother's womb, and naked
shall I return thither; the Lord gave, and the Lord hath taken
away; blessed be the name of the Lord." Job 1:21.</p>

<p>Oh, James may well say, "Ye have heard of the patience of
Job, and have seen the end of the Lord." Jas. 5:11. And also
Paul says, "Consider him that endured such contradiction of
sinners against himself." Heb. 12:3. He knew no sin; bur we
must confess that we deserve more punishment than we suffer,
though the same is profitable, as is written that He chastises
us for our benefit, and that all things work together for good
to us. Rom. 8:28.</p>

<p>Hence I desire of you, my dear friend, that you be of good
cheer in the Lord, and do not grieve, for I have well perceived
that you have lost flesh and become emaciated. Rejoice with me,
and thank God that we are not bastards, but that He receives us
as a Father, yea, as children and fellow heirs of His kingdom,
who here on earth receive like reward with His Son, and this
for the sake of His testimony.</p>

<p>Why should we not suffer the evil, seeing we have received
the good from Him? However, if we would sorrow, we have cause
enough for it, for godly sorrow I mean; for we may with truth
lament, that we are still very unfit; even as you write me,
that you cannot pray well, even as I also, alas I am imperfect.
Jas. 4:3. But the reason of it, in my opinion, is this, that we
are not sufficiently displeased with ourselves, and also, that
we do not perceive the thorns that are in our flesh.</p>

<p>May the Lord have compassion upon us, and open the eyes of
our understanding, so that we mayhate sin, even as God Himself
hates it; for then He takes pleasure in us, even as also holy
David when he says, "Have mercy upon me, O Lord, for I am weak:
O Lord, heal me, for my bones are vexed. My soul is also sore
vexed; but thou, O Lord, how long? Return, O Lord, deliver my
soul: oh save me for thy mercies' sake. . . I am weary with my
groaning; all the night make I my bed to swim; I water my couch
with my tears." Ps. 6:2-4, 6.</p>

<p>But where are the tears which we have shed, my dear wife,
over our past sins, when our souls were wounded even unto
death, yea, sunk in hell? True, we sing, "I acknowledge my
transgressions, and my sin is ever before me, " but it were far
better for us, to lament from deep distress of heart, and to
pray with a broken, contrite and fervent heart, if we
experience the same, now that tribulation and suffering happen
to us in the flesh.</p>

<p>Thus also Esther learned to pray, where she says, "O my Lord,
thou only art our King: help me, desolate woman, which have no
helper but thee; deliver us and help me; for thou knowest all
things; O Lord, thou knowest that I hate the glory of the
unrighteous, and abhor the bed of the uncircumcised, and that I
abhor the sign of my high estate." II Esther 14:3, 15.</p>

<p>We must observe here that the pious woman had an aversion
for the costly apparel, and hated it more than she loved it. Do
you also beware of it, and reprove it sharply in those whom you
see given to it; for it proceeds not from a humble heart. The
proverb says, "Don't put moths into the fur;" neither must we
give the flesh occasion for sin, since it is, alas! evil enough
without that. Gal. 5:13.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear sister, do not respect persons; for the
faith of Jesus does not suffer respect of persons (Dent. 1:17;
Jas. 2:1); but reprove that which is evil with all kindness and
humility, out of love, and show yourself in all things a
pattern of good works and sobriety to all women, with piety and
silence; for he that bridles not his tongue, deceives his own
heart, and his religion is vain.</p>

<p>Hence I affectionately exhort you, while you have time now,
that you will use all diligence; for it is not enough, that we
confess the name of the Lord with the mouth in prison, but we
must first demonstrate our confession in power; for we know
that he who transgresses out of prison, sins just as much as he
that sins in prison, though through weakness, while the other,
sins from wantonness.</p>

<p>Therefore take heed to yourselves, and be always prepared;
for we know not the hour. Watch therefore, and keep your
garments clean, lest you walk naked, and your shame become
manifest. Be always ready for conflict; for David says, "Many
are the afflictions of the righteous: but the Lord delivereth
him out of them all. He keepeth all his bones: not one of them
is broken." Ps. 34:19, 20."He saveth the poor from the sword of
the ungodly, and the needy from the hand of the mighty."</p>

</div><div id="582"> 

<p>Job 5:15. Job further says, "Happy is the man whom God
correcteth: therefore despise not thou the chastening of the
Almighty: for he maketh sore, and bindeth up: he woundeth, and
his hands make whole." 5:17, 18.</p>

<p>Paul also says, that he wants to know Christ, and the power
of His resurrection, and the fellowship of His sufferings,
being made conformable unto His deaath; if by any means (he
says) I might attain unto the resurrection of the dead. Phil.
3:10, 11. Hence we must mourn with Him, that we may also
rejoice with Him. Does not Christ say, "Blessed are they that mourn and lament; for they shall be
comforted; yea, the tears shall be wiped away." Matt. 5:4. And
the Lord does not forsake the widow that is oppressed, as it is
written, "He hears the prayer of the distressed and oppressed,
and He does not despise the prayer of the widows, if they pour
it out before Him with lamentation and sighing; yea, their
tears ascend to heaven, and the Lord will hear them." Sir.
35:24.</p>

<p>Therefore let us be resigned, and say within ourselves, "O
Lord, Almighty King, all things are in Thy power; if it is Thy
will to restore, unto me my husband, there is none that can
resist Thy will. Thou hast made heaven and earth, and all that
is contained in the circuit of heaven. Thou art Lord of all
things. Thou preservest us as the apple of Thine eye, and hast
said through the mouth of David, that we shall cast our burden
upon Thee; for Thou wilt sustain us, and never suffer the
righteous to be moved." Ps. 55:22. Then will your prayer be
fulfilled, as you write, me, that you cannot pray otherwise
than only, "Lord, Thy will be done." And I wish to God for you,
that this may be found in you in truth, and not as Israel cried
to the Lord, when they drew near Him with their mouth, and
magnified Him with their tongues; but their heart was not right
with Him, and they were not found faithful in His covenant.
Isa. 29:13. But they that keep His commandment, shall pray, and
whatsoever they shall ask (in accordance with His will) shall
be granted unto them. John 15:16.</p>

<p>Hence be of good courage, and bring up your children in gpod
manners, and in the fear of God, that their natural
propensities may be mortified; and take an example from
yourself, how you bring them up in their weakness, with great
labor and trouble, and give the breast to them to whom the Lord
has,commanded milk to be given.</p>

<p>You are also to give them the rod, according to the command
of the Lord, when they transgress and are obstinate; for this
is also food for the soul, and drives out the folly which is
bound up in their hearts. Prov. 23:13, 14. Remember the words
of Sirach, where he says (7:26), "Shew not thyself cheerful to
thy daughter, nor laugh with her, lest she become bold against
thee, and thou have to bear shame on her account in the end.
But teach her the law of our God, that she may put her hope in
the Almighty and Most High, and may neverforget the benefits
bestowed upon us through Christ."</p>

<p>I also pray you, that they, as far as possible, be kept away
from intractable children; do not allow them to run about in
the streets, but keep them with you as much as possible, that
you may have joy and sorrow with them; and forget not the kind
of widow mentioned by Paul in his letter to Timothy (I Tim.
5:4); but place your hope firmly in the Lord, and wait for Him
with patience.</p>

<p>Now I understand that you would gladly die; but when I was
still with you, and we lived together in peace, then life was
no cross for you. Remember therefore now what I often told you,
namely, that it is good for the believer to have tribulation
and distress, that we may learn to say with Paul, "We groan,
earnestly desiring to be clothed upon with our house which is
from heaven: if so be that being clothed we shall not be found
naked. For we that are in this body, are burdened, and willing
rather to be absent from the body, and to be present with the
Lord, than to walk in his absence in much affliction." II Cor.
5:2. Alas! friend, how few there are that say this; I mean
among those who enjoy peace and rest.</p>

<p>Therefore thank the Lord, that He has given this grace, and
perhaps removed me from your sight for the best; for He is a
jealous God; He will be loved the most, and have sole
possession of the human heart. And you have also asked Him to
remove from your path everything that might be in the way of
your salvation. Hence think that He is proving us both, and let
us willingly take the yoke upon us, and count it all joy. Jas.
1:2. For what are the sufferings of this world? Nothing but a
dream, as David says, "When the Lord turned again the captivity
of Zion, we were like them that dream. Then was our mouth
filled with laughter." Psalm 126:1.</p>

<p>Thus it is with us as with a woman in travail; when the
child is brought forth, she would not surrender it, because of
the former pain. So also we, when we have been delivered from
the child, we would not take the whole world for it.</p>

<p>Hence take good heed, that you be not startled or
frightened, that the child may be born in due time. Take food
and nourishment from the husband Christ, that you may have
strength for labor; and neglect not to receive the true food,
the Word of God. Remember Israel, who were satiated with bread
from heaven. May the Lord give you a sound soul, and a fervent
stomach of love, so that the food may be well digested.
Amen.</p>

<p>May the grace of the Lord be increased unto you, my dear
wife. Be always subject to the God-fearing, and associate with
the pious, and pray God to keep me in the truth; for truth
abides and is strong forever; it lives, and will forever
prevail.</p>

<p>Greet all the saints with the kiss of love, and all who love
the Lord Jesus, and tell them to be kind; for God is the Hero
and Captain, who so faithfully succors in time of need. He is
like a shower upon</p>

</div><div id="583"> 

<p>the parched earth in a dry summer. _ Thus He refreshes the
afflicted souls, that thirst for Him, He is a shadow from the
heat of the sun. Matt. 11:28; Isa. 55:1; 25:4.</p>

<p>Tell the brethren to take care of the novices, and, to pray
earnestly for me. I will also pray for them, as much as is in
my power: Remember my bonds. The Lord be with your spirit.
Amen.</p>

<p>Your dear husband, Thomas van <i>Imbroeck,</i></p>

<p>imprisoned for the testimony of Jesus Christ.</p>

<p>P. S. This Thomas van Imbroeck composed an excellent
confession of baptism, as also a defense against the
adversaries, in regard, to the same matter, and delivered it
all to the lors of justice of the city of Cologne. Concerning
this, see our Account of Holy Baptism, for the year 1558.</p>

<br />

<h1>GOVERT JASPERS, PUT TO DEATH A. D. 1558</h1>

<p>About this time a lay brother by the name of Govert Jaspers,
with two others, left the monastery of the 'Cross-brethren at
Goes. However, they did not continue together long; for one-of
them utterly forsook the good way, and accepted the love of
this world; the other, from fear of persecution; went to
Friesland, where he became a brother in the church, and died a
pious man; but this Govert Jaspers was apprehended by the
bailiff, soon after he left the monastery, as he was sitting in
the field, reading in a Testament. He was brought to the city
of Brussels, in Brabant, where he had to suffer much, yea,
finally even death, for the testimony of the truth, in which he
steadfastly persevered and thus, as a valiant soldier of Jesus
Christ, pressed through the strait gate, in order to take by
force'the kingdom of God, which he had preferred far above all
the kingdoms of this world.</p>

<h2>MAERTEN BOSSIER SUFFERED, A. D. 1558</h2> 

<p>About the same time there was apprehended at. Werwijck, in
Flanders, for the truth, one brother Maerten Bossier, who,
after much temptation and trial, also had to suffer temporal
death (by burning); but now the second death shall have no
power over him.</p>

<h2>ABSALOM VAN TOMME, OR THE SINGER, A. D. 1558</h2> 

<p>All that would follow Christ, must take His cross upon them;
this was experienced by one brother Absalom van Tomme, or the
Singer, who was apprehended for the truth, at Kortrijck, in
Flanders, in the year 1558. After he had' been examined, and
had made confession of his faith, he was severely assailed with
threats and tortures, in order to cause him to apostatize; but
he remained steadfast in everything, and firmly trusted in God,
so that he was sentenced to death, and burned, showing himself
a good disciple or servant of 'Christ, who did not wish to be
above his Master, but like Him, in order to enterinto the
kingdom of God, even as Christ had to suffer, to enter into His
glory.</p>

<h2>WILLEM VAN HAVERBEKE, A. , D. 1558</h2> 

<p>William van. Haverbeke also not only suffered persecution
for the name of the Lord, but also suffered himself to be
apprehended, and to be led before lords and princes, where he
freely confessed his faith, and steadfastly continued in the
same, no amount of suffering, pain or torment being sufficient
to cause him to apostatize, So great was the love of God shed
broad in his heart; hence he was finally condemned, and
confirmed the same with his death, ,at Kortrijck, in Flanders,
in the year 1558.</p>

<h2>DANIEL VERKAMPT, A. D. 1558</h2> 

<p>About this time, also a young man named Daniel Verkampt,
after suffering much persecution, was apprehended at Kortrijck,
in Flanders, for living truly according to the Word of God.
Being sharply examined by the deans of Rouse and Nlet, he
willingly and freely confessed his faith, and said that he
would firmly adhere to it even unto death; but of his fellow
believers he would betray no one.</p>

<p>Thereupon Ronse and Polet summoned the mother of this young
man before them. She was a little old woman, and walked with a
staff. When she appeared before them, they told her with severe
words, that according to the imperial decree she had forfeited
life and property for having harbored her son, whom they had
found to be a heretic.</p>

<p>To this she meekly replied, "My lords, shall I forfeit life
and property, for having now and then given shelter to my own
son in his distress-whom I carried under my heart, brought
forth in pain, and nourished in affliction-when he is neither a
thief nor a rogue, but is called the most excellent young man
of our village; and this merely because you say that he is a
heretic? I think that if the Emperor were present, from whom
you say you have a decree, he would say that you abuse his
decree against me, and he would commend me, that the mother's
heart was moved with compassion for her child, that has never
merited any tiling else. Truly, my lords; this is contrary to
your proper wisdom and urbanity; for, know, that if in that
hour when you came to apprehend him, I could have concealed him
from you in my body, by carrying him again for nine months,
giving him birth, and raising him, as I have done once, God
knows how. gladly I would have cone it." This she said with
such pathos, that all the lords who were present and sat in
court declared her innocent; and said that she had not acted
contrary to the nature of a true mother's heart; and hence the
mother was set at liberty, but the son had to purchase with
fire the constancy of his faith, and the love of God, with
which he was inflamed, and was burnt for the testimony of fesus
Christ- who will make him free for-</p>

</div><div id="584"> 

<h2>MARCUS DE LEDERSNIJDER, A. D. 1558</h2> 

<p>Not long after the above, also a brother named Marcus de
Ledersnijder was apprehended for the truth, at Kortrijck, in
Flanders, who, having been much importuned and tortured, yet
constantly remaining steadfast, was condemned to death, and
burned with fire, thus offering up his soul to God, who also
most graciously accepted it.</p>

<h2>JACOB DE MELSELAER, A. D. 1558</h2> 

<p>In the year 1558, Jacob de Melselaer, a brother, was
apprehended at Antwerp, for living according to and keeping the
Word of God; who, after much examination and torment, as he
would not renounce or apostatize, was condemned to death, and
brought forth into the marketplace, with a gag in his mouth, to
prevent him from speaking. Nevertheless, he went to death with
boldness, and valiantly testified with his blood to the faith
he had confessed.</p>

<h2>LOUWIJS DE WEVER, A. D. 1558</h2> 

<p>In this same year brother Louwijs de Wever was beheaded in
prison at Antwerp, for the confession of and steadfast
adherence to his faith.</p>

<h2>FRANS TIBAN AND LITTLE DIRK, A. D. 1558</h2> 

<p>A short time after this, also two brethren named Frans Tiban
and Little Dirk, were apprehended for their faith, at Antwerp,
examined, tortured, af-. flicted with much torment, and,
finally, as they would in no wise apostatize, condemned to
death, and beheaded in prison.</p>

<h2>HENDERICK- LEERVERKOOPER, ANTHONIS AND<br />
DIRK DE SCHILDER, A.D. 1558</h2> 

<p>Three brethren, namely, Henderick Leerverkooper, Anthonis
and Dirk de Schilder, were also apprehended at Antwerp, for the
truth; who, as diligent followers, and true sheep of Christ,
had to taste death for His sake, being executed with the
sword.</p>

<h2>WAECHLING DIRKS, MAERTEN SCHOENMAECKER,<br />
AND ADRIAEN PIETERS, A. D. 1558</h2> 

<p>In the year 1558, Waechling Dirks, Maerten Schoenmaecker,
and Adriaen Pieters, all three of them natives of Wijnckel,
were apprehended for the Gospel and the divine truth, and as
they steadfastly adhered to the same, without departing
therefrom, all three were finally condemned at Gravenhage, in
Holland, and put to death, as pious witnesses of Jesus Christ,
and are now awaiting the crown of life.</p>

<h2>WOUTER VAN HONSCHOTEN, A. D. 1558</h2> 

<p>In this year, a young brother named Wouter van Honschoten
was apprehended, at Honschoten, inFlanders, for following the
Word of God, and as he freely confessed his faith, and would in
no wise depart from it, he was finally sentenced to death and
to the fire, and was burnt as a pious witness of God.</p>

<h2>JACOB DE SWARTE, HANSKEN VAN DEN BROECKE,<br />
AND OTHERS, A. D. 1558</h2> 

<p>In the year 1558, a brother named Jacob de Swarte (son of
Jan de Swarte), and Hanscken van den Broecke, went from Ostende
to Bruges, to hear the preaching of the Word of God, and were
apprehended these, together with others. No sufferings being
sufficient to deter or separate them from the love of God, they
were finally sentenced to death, and thus valiantly ended their
lives for the testimony of the Gospel, about St. John's day, in
midsummer.</p>

<h2>HANS DEN DUYTSCH, A. D. 1558</h2> 

<p>About this time, also a brother named Hans den Duytsch was
apprehended at Antwerp; who freely confessed his faith, and
would firmly adhere to it; for he chose rather to die a
temporal death for the truth, and thus gain eternal life, than
to purchase a short wicked life with everlasting death. They
had him beheaded in the prison, whereupon they, like madmen,
threw his body into the Scheldt.</p>

<h2>SANDER HENDRICKS, HANS DE SMIT, HANS VAN<br />
BURCULO, PIETER IN DE VETTEWARIJE, ARENT<br />
AND GERAERT PASSEMENTWERKER, IN THE<br />
YEAR 1558</h2> 

<p>Very soon after, also six brethren, namely, Sander
Hendricks, Hans de Smit, Hans van Burculo, Pieter in de
Vettewarije, Arent and Geraert Passementwerker, were publicly
put to death for the truth in the marketplace, in .the presence
of all the people. They all valiantly confessed the name of
Christ, and are now waiting for the crown of glory, which is
promised to all heroes of the Lord.</p>

<h2>GRIETGEN, TANNEKEN, LIJNTGEN, AND STIJNTGEN<br />
OF AIX-LA-CHAPELLE, A. D. 1558</h2> 

<p>Not long after the above, also four sisters, named Grietgen,
Tanneken, Lijntgen and Stijntgen of Aix-la-Chapelle were
apprehended at Antwerp, on account of the faith, and severely
examined; but as they could in no wise be moved therefrom, and
fought as heroines for the name of Christ, always firmly
adhering to the truth, they were finally tied crooked and
drowned in prison.</p>

<h2>JANNEKEN AND NOELE, A.D. 1558</h2> 

<p>There was also a young maiden named Janneken apprehended for
her faith, at Antwerp; who, when she appeared before the lords,
freely confessed her faith. The Margrave said, "Janneken, if you
will renounce, I will show you favor; do</p>

</div><div id="585"> 

<p>according to my will, and I will give you your life." But she
replied, "The life that you would give me, I desire not; for
your promises are vain and as wavering as a reed, and would
only bring me into greater sorrow: cursed is every one that
trusts in man." Jer. 17:5.</p>

<p>There was a preacher named Balthazar, who endeavored to make
her believe that God was in the sacrament; however, she would
not confess it, but said, "You thus disgrace God in your body;
but read the Lord's Prayer once." And when he read it, she
said, "There, you see, you read that He is in heaven, and how
dare you say then, that He is in the sacrament?"</p>

<p>In the court she was asked by the bailiff, whether she was
rebaptized. She said, "Question me in regard to my faith, and I
will freely confess it to you; or are you ashamed of it? I
confess one baptism, which must follow faith, and does not
pertain to infants, but requires previous amendment of life."
The bailiff said, "We have done enough to gain you; if you had
suffered yourself to be prevailed upon to recant, you should
have done well." She replied, "You have loved my flesh, but not
my soul, which you would have gladly devoured; but God will
receive it as a child, and make it an heir. And though you are
now a bailiff in your glory, you will deplore it in the
judgment of God, and wish that you had rather been a herdsman*
in the fear of God." Thereupon she was sentenced to death, and,
having commended her spirit into the hands of God, was drowned
in a tub, together with another woman, named Noele.</p>

<h2>ADRIAEN VAN HEE, JOGS MEEUWENS, WILLEM,<br />
GOOSSEN AND EGBERT DE HOEDEMAECKER,<br />
AND LAMBERT VAN DOORNICK, A. D. 1558</h2> 

<p>As the Jews in the time of the apostles envied the
assemblies of the Christians, and disturbed them wherever they
could, so have also their successors, the ministers of
antichrist, universally done, which appeared also in the year
1558, near Doornick, where some Christians and faithful
children of God had assembled, in order to be refreshed,
edified and bettered by the preaching of the Word of God. They
were also spied out, dispersed, partly scattered, and six of
them apprehended, namely, Adriaen van Hee, cutler, Joos
Meeuwens, Willem de Hoedemaecker, Goossen de Hoedemaecker,
Egbert de Hoedemaecker, and Lambert van Doornick. They were
together brought to Doornick, and having been imprisoned there
a fortnight, they were condemned to death for their steadfast
adherence to the true faith in God, and taken without Doornick,
into a forest belonging under the jurisdiction of Hainault, and
there burnt. as pious witnesses of God, who shall not taste the
fire of hell, but shall live in joy with all the chosen of the
Lord.</p>

<br /><cite>*See note in a former page.</cite> 

<h1>JORIS WIPPE, JOOSTEN'S SON, PUT TO DEATH AT 
DORTRECHT, A. D. 1558</h1>

<p>Joris Wippe, when he still lived in the darkness of popery,
was a burgomaster at Meenen in Flanders, his native place; but
having subsequently come to the knowledge of the Gospel, he had
to flee the country, and went to live at Dortrecht, in Holland,
where he established himself as clothdyer. When he had lived
there for a while, and was becoming known, he, through the
instigation of the enemies of the truth, was summoned to appear
before the lords in the large church. Somewhat alarmed on this
account, Joris consulted with several drapers, for whom he
dyed, and who were men of influence, as to what he should do.
They, placing entire confidence in the magistracy, deemed it
advisable that he should appear before them, and hear what they
had to say to him.</p>

<p>When he came there, and the lords saw him, they were filled
with consternation, and would have preferred that he had taken
their summons as a warning to secretly make his escape, since
they did not thirst much for innocent blood; but as he had
appeared, the bailiff, when Joris was about to leave the
church, seized him as one who, according to the imperial
decree, had forfeited life and property. This happened on the
28th of April, 1558.</p>

<p>After his apprehension, the lords tried every means to save
him from death; he was sent to Gravenhage (that is, to the
court of Holland), and there examined; but as he was a resident
of Dordrecht, and had been apprehended there, he was sent back
thither, and ultimately put to death there.</p>

<p>He left behind him a good testimony as regards his
liberality to the poor; for when he was sentenced to death, the
executioner lamented with tears in his eyes, that he had to put
to death a man who had so often fed his wife and children, and
would rather forego his office, than put to death this man, who
had done so much good to him and others, and had never harmed
any one. Hence he was finally drowned, in the night, in a wine
cask filled with water, by one of the thiefcatchers, who, at
the command of the lords, performed the executioner's office on
him, pushing him backward into the water. Thus he offered up
-his life to the Lord, on the first of October, being forty-one
years old. The next day he was hung by his feet to the gallows,
in the place of execution, as an object of derision to the
people, being thus, like his Master, numbered among the
malefactors. The day following, several criminals were scourged
and banished; whereupon the executioner, after he had executed
this punishment, still lamenting the death of Joris Wippe,
said, "They have crucified Christ, and released Barabbas."</p>

<p>He wrote several letters in prison, three of which have come
into our possession. He doubtless would have written more; but
great watchfulness was exercised that he should have no ink, so
that</p>

</div><div id="586"> 

<p>he wrote his last letter (to his children) with mulberry
juice.</p>

<p>NOTE.-Inasmuch as we, after long search in the archives of
this city, found the sentence of death of this friend of God,
Joris Wippe, and copied it ourselves from the criminal records
of this city, we deem it well to add it here, so that the truth
of the above account concerning the death of this man may
appear the more clearly and incontrovertibly.</p>

<p class="c8"><i>Sentence of death of Joris Wippe done and
pronounced in the chamber (of justice), the</i> 4th <i>o f</i>
August, 1558</p>

<p>Whereas Joris Wippe, Joosten's son, born at Meenen, in
Flanders, has dared to have himself rebaptized, and has held*
pernicious views concerning baptism, according to testimony and
truth, and all the evidence which the judges and the council
have seen and heard with regard to it, and according to his own
confession, therefore, he shall, to the honor of God,t and the
edification of the lords and the city,*** be drowned in a cask,
and his body then be brought to the place of execution, and
there be hung to the gallows, and his property shall be
confiscated, and placed in the lord's exchequer.</p>

<p><i>Extracted from the book of criminal records of the city
of Dortrecht, commenced on the last o f October,</i> 1554,
<i>and ended on the 16th of June,</i> 1573</p>

<p>This is the first sentence of death publicly pronounced upon
any one with regard to matters of faith, which we found in this
book. As to whether it was pronounced in the chamber of
justice, in the presence of the lords alone, or publicly
proclaimed in court, before all men, is not expressed; nor is
it of much importance to know. This much is certain, that his
death resulted in consequence.</p>

<p>But since, according to the testimony of old writers, the
executioner was not willing to execute this man, and the lords
of justice themselves were not a little troubled in this
matter, though they had allowed themselves to be persuaded by
the priests and monks, the execution of the sentence pronounced
was postponed for over seven weeks, namely, from the 4th of
August until the first of October, A. D. 1558.</p>

<p>The following night, having commended his soul into the
hands of God, he was drowned in a wine cask, by,one of the
thiefcatchers, as related above, in the Vuylgate at Dortrecht,
where he was imprisoned.</p>

<p><i>Further Observation.-According to</i> John van
Beverwijck's account of the government of the city of
Dortrecht, the following persons sat in court when sentence of
death was passed upon this pious man</p>

<p>Adriaen van Blyenberg Adriaens (who also sat in court when
sentence was passed upon Digna Pieters), bailiff of Dortrecht;
together with nine judges: Mr. T. Schoock Sir Pieters; Cornelis
Krooswijck Jans; Frans Anthoniss; Mr. Aert van der Lede Sir
Staess; Willem Boucquet Blasiuss; Adriaen van Nispen Gerrits;
Frans Adriaens; Heyman van Bleyenbergh Adriaens; Cornelis van
Beveren Claess.</p>

<p>But whether they all unanimously passed this sentence, is
not stated; however, it appears that the majority concurred
therein, which can not have taken place without grief and
compunction of conscience on their part, since but a short time
before they had sought to get rid of the doomed man, and for
this purpose had sent him to the Hague, to the court of
Holland, that he might be judged there; but when he returned
they sentenced him to death -certainly a lamentable matter on
their part; but on the part of the martyr a matter of
rejoicing, since death was for him the entrance to an eternal
and blissful life.</p>

<br /><cite>*Has held," etc.; an error of the writer of this
sentence; for Joris still held these views at that very
time.</cite> 

<br /><cite>* How can God be honored by what lie has
forbidden?</cite> 

<br /><cite>** What edification could the lords derive
therefrom, who, by doing this, made themselves tyrants, yea,
murderers?</cite> 

<h2>The first letter of Joris Wippe, written to
his wife, when he was sent from Dortrecht to the Hague</h2> 

<p>The eternal joy and gladness which ear has not heard, nor
eye seen, nor has entered into the heart of man, this same joy
and gladness I wish you my dearest wife and sister, whom I love
in God, for a heartfelt salutation. Amen.</p>

<p>My most beloved wife and sister in the Lord, I wish you the
joy of the Holy Ghost in your heart, for a heartfelt greeting
in God our Saviour and Lord; which joy of the Spirit is love,
joy, peace, long suffering, gentleness, goodness, faith,
meekness, temperance; against such there is no law; and they
that are Christ's have crucified the flesh with the affections
and lusts. Gal. 5:22-24.</p>

<p>Therefore my dear wife in the Lord, take heed to yourself,
that you abound with this precious Spirit; for of that with
which one is filled He will bring forth. Regard not the joy and
pleasure of this world;"for whatsoever a man soweth, that shall
he also reap. For he that soweth to his flesh shall of the
flesh reap corruption: but he that soweth to the Spirit shall
of the Spirit reap life everlasting." Gal. 6:7, 8. O dear
sister in the Lord, let us"no be weary in well doing; for in
due season we shall reap if we faint not. As we have therefore
opportunity, let us do good unto all men, especially unto them
who are of the household of faith." Gal. 6:9. Hence, pray
always with all prayer, watching and supplication in the
Spirit, in all your requests to the Lord (Eph. 6:18), and let
your modesty and obedience, and your love to God, be an example
and pattern to all our dear obedient children, whom the holy
Lord has given us, to the praise and glory of His Father. And
use diligence in teaching and admonishing them; and chastise
them, lest the Lord requires them at your hands. Do your very
best, so that I may see you all again at the resurrection of
the just. Luke 14:14. Be</p>

</div><div id="587"> 

<p>well content, and always fix your heart and mind upon the
living God; for He will not forsake the widow and the
fatherless; but His eyes behold the afflicted widows and
fatherless, and His ear is open unto their prayer. Hence, be
patient, and commit all your concerns to the Lord; He will be a
kind Protector to you. If you remain faithful to Him, He will
be faithful to you; He will not be wanting on His part.</p>

<p>I further let you know, that my mind and heart are still
fixed upon the living God, and I trust by His great mercy not
to separate from Him, and I daily wait for my redemption. I
thought that your sister had just come in time to witness my
offering. I knew nothing to the contrary for a time; but my
hour had not come yet- the Lord knows how to reserve His own
for the proper time. O dear wife, pray the Lord for me as long
as I am in this poor, weak flesh. I trust to remember you also
in my prayers, and I most affectionately thank you in the Lord
for sending me so kind an exhortation, which is food for the
soul; I also thank you for the temporal things.</p>

<p>Herewith I commend you to Almighty God, and to the Word of
His grace. Amen. Greet all the brethren and sisters much in the
Lord.</p>

<p>Written by me, Joris Wippe, your husband and brother in the
Lord, imprisoned at the Hague, in Holland, for the testimony of
Jesus Christ.</p>

<h2>The second letter of Joris Wippe, written to
his wife, when he, through those of Dordrecht, lay imprisoned at the Hague</h2> 

<p>Everlasting joy, grace and peace from God our heavenly
Father, through Jesus Christ our Lord and Saviour, and the joy
of the Holy Ghost in your heart and conscience, be with you, my
most beloved wife and sister in the Lord;J wish it to you as an
affectionate salutation in the Lord, and to all our dear
children, whom God has given us; to Him be praise forever and
ever. Amen.</p>

<p>My most dearly beloved wife and sister in the Lord, I salute
you with a loving heart in the Lord with the salutation of
Christ, and also all my dear obedient children, whom the holy
Lord has given us to the Oraise .and glory of His. Father. My
most beloved wife in the Lord, I also inform you with joy that
my mind, heart and soul are still fixed upon the living God and
Father, through Jesus Christ His dear, beloved Son, our
Saviour; and I trust, through His fatherly lave, which He shows
to me poor, unprofitable servant, through His great mercy, not
to separate from Him and His holy Word; for His Word is truth,
and His commandment, life everlasting. He went before us with
much misery and tribulation; we must follow His footsteps,
since the servant is not above his Lord. For He has so kindly
admonished us with regard to this, saying, "If they have
persecuted me, they will also persecute you, if they have
excommunicated me, they will also excommunicate you; and all
these things will they do- unto you, becausethey have known
neither me nor my Father." John 15:20, 21.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear wife, whom I love in God, be well content,
and fix your whole heart and hope upon the living God; He will
not leave you an afflicted widow, with all your fatherless
children; for His eyes are upon the righteous, and His ears are
open unto their cry, and He will succor the cause of the widow
and the fatherless. Ps. 34:15.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dearly beloved wife, take the Almighty God for
your Protector, and plant a valiant spirit into your heart,
like the Maccabean mother with her seven sons. II Macc. 7. Pray
the holy Lord for wisdom and understanding, and in all your
concerns pray God with supplication in the Spirit, that you may
bring up all our olive plants (Ps. 128:3) to His honor and the
magnifying of His holy name, so that they may not be required
at your hands. So far you have done your best with admonishing
and chastising; keep them thus with the Lord's help. Always
submit yourself to the elders of the church; for they watch for
your souls [as they that must give account] that they may do it
with joy. Heb. 13:17. And if you need counsel or help in any
matter, consult with the elders, as we have hitherto done. Use
hospitality and forget not to communicate. I Peter 4:9; Heb.
13:16. Think often of the poor, afflicted widow (Matthew 12:42;
43), who threw but two mites into the treasury;-Verily, said
Christ, she hath cast more in, than they all-that you may be
found a true widow before the Lord, who has washed the saints'
feet, relieved the afflicted, brought up children in the fear
of God, and diligently followed every good work. I Tim. 5:10.
Pray the Lord diligently to rule you with His divine Spirit,
since He is the true Comforter of all the children of God; that
you may live your widowhood to His praise and honor, as long as
it is His pleasure. I sincerely thank you people much for the
love you have shown me in the kind exhortation you have sent
me. I have also very earnestly prayed the Lord for you, and
hope to do so .as long as I shall be in this temporal life.
Remember me also in your prayers, until I have put off this
mortal clothing. II Esd. 2:45.</p>

<p>Herewith I commend you people to Almighty God, and to the
Word of His grace, and take leave forever until at the
resurrection of the just. Then, I trust, we shall meet in. one
fold. Then shall we hear the sweet voice of our
Bridegroom, "Come, ye blessed of my Father, inherit the kingdom
prepared for you from the foundation of the world." Matt.
25:34. Blessed and holy is he that hath part in the first
resurrection; on such the second death hath no power. But we
shall be priests of God and of Christ, and shall reign with Him
a thousand years; for Christ is the resurrection and the life,
and we must be partakers of Him, if we are to hear that voice.
Rev. 20:6; Rom. 8:11.</p>

<p>Salute me the friends much in the Lord, especially those of
Meenen, and Claes Moykaert and Janneken his wife; and greet
Victor Martens-I</p>

</div><div id="589"> 

<p>saw him at Dordrecht, when I lay in the den of lions-and
greet all that fear the Lord, and exhort them to diligence,
that we may all meet together in the new Jerusalem. The God of
peace be with you. Phil. 4:9. Greet your sister much and all
that are with her.</p>

<p class="c8">Written by me, Joris Wippe, your husband and
brother in the Lord, in bonds at the Hague, in Holland.</p>

<h2>THE THIRD'LETTER OF JORIS WIPPE, TO HIS CHILDREN, WHEN HE WAS RETURNED FROM THE HAGUE TO DORDRECHT</h2> 

<p>My dearly beloved and obedient children, I wish you an
honorable, virtuous and godly life in the fear of God, all the
days of your life, to the praise of the Father, and the
salvation of- your souls, as an affectionate greeting.
Amen.</p>

<p>My most beloved sons, all three of you, you are well aware
now, I trust, that I am in bonds here for the testimony of
Christ our Saviour, to the praise of His Almighty Father, and
wait with patience daily, when it pleases Him to offer, up my
body and soul to the magnifying of His holy name. I entreat
you, my dear sons, with aged Tobias, that you will honor your
poor bereaved mother, who is deprived of everything for the
name of the Lord, all the days of your life; for she brought
you forth with great suffering and pain, which I well know, and
has with great care and diligence helped to bring you so far
with the help of the Lord. Tob. 4:3. I have also been your
protector hitherto, with great care and diligence to bring you
up in the fear of God, to His honor. Now it is the will of the
Lord, that we must part; but let it not grieve you. For if you
pursue virtue, and walk in the fear of God, and keep His
commandments all the days of your life, we shall hereafter,
meet in one fold (John 10:16) with all God's chosen children,
at the resurrection of the just. And I admonish you with
Tobias, that you will fear God all the days of your life, never
consent to sin, nor transgress God's commandments; and that you
will eat your bread with the hungry, and give alms of that
which the Lord gives you. In short, I give you the same
testament which Tobias gave his son; you are able to read. I
pray that you will often read it. And all that our holy fathers
commanded their children, I also leave unto you; may you
diligently observe it. And I now bless you all my obedient,
most dearly beloved children, with that God with whom Abraham,
Isaac and Jacob and all God's chosen friends, blessed their
children. Further, I admonish you Joos, as my eldest son, that
you and Hansken, my second son, will be the protectors of your
poor mother, in the fear of God, all the days of your life. And
I also charge you, Barbertgen, my dear daughter, to be obedient
to your mother, and to help care for all your little sisters,
and for Pierken. Learn also to read, and be diligent in every
good work, that you may, spend your life in holiness and in all
thefear of God, like Sarah, the wife of young Tobias (Tobit
3:15), and associate not with the wanton and frivolous
daughters of this world, whose end will. be destruction; but be
sober, honorable and just in all your dealings, so that you may
be prudent, being adorned with every virtue, and that where
Christ our Bridegroom comes you may be ready with the five wise
virgins, to enter with the Bridegroom into the kingdom of His
Father. And now I charge you, Joos and Hansken, that together
with Barbertgen, your obedient sister, you will care for your
three little sisters, and for Pierken, and teach them to read
and to work, so that they may grow up in all righteousness, to
the honor of God and the salvation of their souls. Be diligent
to work with your hands that which is honorable, remembering
the words of the apostle, "It is more blessed to give than to
receive;" so that you may not be burdensome to any through
idleness. Eph. 4:28; Acts 20:35. Remain with your mother as
long as it please the Lord, and in all things show yourselves a
pattern of.good works. Tit. 2:7. But if ye be servants, I
exhort you, to be obedient to your lord or master, and to
please them in all things, not answering again, not purloining,
but showing good fidelity in all things; that you may adorn the
doctrine of God our Saviour in all things. For the grace of God
.f that bringeth salvation] hath appeared to all men, teaching
us that, denying ungodliness and worldly lusts, we should live
soberly, righteously, and godly in this present world; looking
for that blessed hope and the glorious appearing of the great
God and our Saviour Jesus Christ; who gave Himself for us, that
He might redeem us from all iniquity, and purify unto Himself a
peculiar people, zealous of good works. Tit. 2:914. I admonish
you all, my dear children, that you will do this; and comfort
your mother, and often, when you have time, read to her a
chapter or two. And spend the -time which God gives you, in all
sobriety and righteousness, with prayer and supplecation to
God, that He would keep you from the evil. Have no fellowship
with the children of this world, that you may not become
partakers of their evil deeds; always walk with wise men, and
you shall become wise, namely, strong and very bold, so that
you may eschew evil. Do all things according to the law of
God, and depart neither to the right nor to the left; neither
add nor take away therefrom, so that you may walk wisely
whithersoever you go. Be not terrified; for the Lord your God
is with you wherever you go, and will be your Protector. Always
speak the truth, and let not your mouth become accustomed to
lying, for the mouth that belieth, slayeth the soul; but when
you speak, speak the Word of God, and .the Lord your God will
bring you from righteousness to righteousness; for nothing is
hid before Him; His eyes are as a flame of fire. Zech. 8:16;
Lev. 19:11; Rev. 1:14.</p>

<p>Herewith I take leave from you forever, my dear children,
until at the resurrection, and commend</p>

</div><div id="589"> 

<p>you all to Almighty God and to the Word of His grace. Amen.
And may God's Spirit ever be present with you, to comfort and
strengthen you in all righteousness.</p>

<p class="c5">Written by me, Joris Wippe, your father,
imprisoned at Dordrecht, in the huylgate, for the testimony of
Jesus Christ.</p>

<br />

<h1>HANS SMIT, HENDRICK ADAMS, HANS BECK, MATTHIJS SMIT, DILEMAN SNIJDER, AND SEVEN OTHERS, A. D. 1558</h1>

<p>In the year 1558, Brother Hans Smit, a minister of the Word
of God, was sent forth by the church to seek and gather those
that were eager for the truth. Acts 13:3. When he therefore,
being divinely called, undertook to travel through the
Netherlands, he, together with five brethren and six sisters,
was apprehended in the city of Aix-la-Chapelle, on the ninth of
January. While they were assembled there in a house, to speak
of the Word of God, and were engaged in prayer, many servants
and children of Pilate came there in the night through
treachery, with spears, halberds, and bare swords, and well
provided with ropes and bonds, and surrounded the house, and
bound and apprehended these children of God. They even took
with them a mother with her infant that lay in the cradle. But
the prisoners were valiant and comforted one another, to be
undismayed, since they were imprisoned for the truth of God;
and being thus of good cheer, they began to sing for joy. They
were very soon separately confined, in which the sisters
rejoiced, and sang, so that the people were astonished. In the
morning they were brought before the judge, who talked with
each separately, and then remanded them to prison, when he
perceived their steadfastness. However, the next day the
minister was again summoned before the lords, that he should
tell them, how many he had baptized, who they were and where
the church held their meetings. But he told them, that they
should know that he would rather lose his life (John 15: 13)
than by telling this become a traitor, whereupon he was
tortured and racked for about a quarter of an hour, to which he
willingly submitted, himself taking off his clothes, and going
to the rack. When they could accomplish nothing by it, they
went away, but soon returned, and said, "You must tell us. what
we have asked you, or we shall torture you so as to rack your
limbs asunder." They also questioned him with regard to infant
baptism. He replied that infant baptism was a human
institution, and that as such he regarded it, and not as the
true Christian baptism.</p>

<p>They also asked him what he thought of the sacrament. He
replied,"I think much of it; but that which the priests use is
not at all the true supper of Christ, but a piece of
idolatry."</p>

<p>Thereupon they bound him hand and foot, and tied to his feet
a large stone weighing little less than a hundred pounds, and
thus drew him up, so thatthe ring on the stone broke, and the
stone remained on the ground. But they took a rope, fastened it
to the stone, in place of the broken ring, and hung the stone
to his foot, and left him suspended thus for some time;
however, they could not accomplish their purpose. Hence they
let him down, and put him in prison until Sunday morning, when
the lords came from the city with seven priests, who asked him
concerning his calling; whereupon he said that he had not put
himself into the ministry, but God and His Spirit in His
church; for as God sent His Son, and the Son the apostles into
all the world, so He still sends His ministers through His
Spirit, that they should first preach the Word of God, and then
baptize such as hear, understand and believe it, but not young
infants. They also asked him concerning the magistracy, whether
he regarded it as Christian or not. He replied that in the
first place he regarded them as ministers of God, but that they
were deceived and wrongly taught by the priests, and not
incorporated into the Christian church. They also inquired of
him the origin of the magistracy. He replied that office and
power are of God. They then asked him, whether they were
Christians. He answered that if they denied and forsook
themselves, took up the cross, abandoned their tyranny and
pomp, and followed Christ, they could be Christians, not
otherwise. They also interrogated him with regard to swearing.
He said that Christ had forbidden it. And much more, which it
would take too long to write.</p>

<p>Finally they asked him concerning the incarnation of Christ.
He said that he believed that Christ was true God and true man,
sin alone excepted. At last they told him, that if he would
renounce his baptism, and confess that he had erred, they would
show him favor. But he replied that he had taught the pure
truth, so he would adhere to it. Thereupon they said that he
was in their city, and that he could not do so there; and that
if they did not punish this, the king or the new Emperor should
punish them on their bodies; thus they defended themselves like
Pilate. But the brother said that it would go hard with them
for this; for though God forgave every sin, yet He should judge
the innocent blood, and they should not think that they should
escape punishment, if they killed him, since the matter should
come before Christ, who should judge it, and take care of it,
at His day. After this they put him back into prison, where
they left him until Monday evening, when the judge came again,
with several others, and also a monk, to dispute with him. But
they did not accomplish much, for he put the monk to utter
confusion, so that the latter was glad to get away. Many other
monks and priests were sent yet, to dispute with him; but they
were all put to shame and derision, and were not able to cause
this pious man to apostatize. Shortly after they were brought
forth again and examined; but God continually gave them bold
utterance, and wisdom, so that they could find no</p>

</div><div id="590"> 

<p>fault, or cause of death in him, save only that they did not
sufficiently esteem the Emperor. At one time they brought to
Brother Henderick alone a subtle serpent and blasphemer, and
said, "You don't want any ecclesiastics (monks and priests);
hence we have brought to you a learned layman, to instruct
you." But Henderick said that he did not want to be instructed
by him, unless he were sufficiently instructed by God and His
Word, since he did not want to seek life from the dead. This
learned man then wanted to prove infant baptism, asserting that
the apostles had ordained it. But Henderick replied and spoke
to him in such a manner that he had to confess openly, that no
infants were baptized in the days of the apostles, and that
they had no faith during their infancy. This, Henry wrote upon
the table with a piece of chalk, and called upon the obstinate
lords to bear witness to it, and also how he had been silenced.
He further said, "Thus will all your learned men be confounded
before the Word of the Lord."</p>

<p>Several of the lords said that if these should be put to
death, they should leave home. Once the brethren and sisters
were all twelve left together from four o'clock in the morning
until ten in the evening. They were joyful and of good cheer,
and conversed with one another from the Word of God, and began
to pray and praise God.</p>

<p>Brother Hans, as the minister, led them in prayer, as loud
as he could, so that the people ran together and listened. But
when the lords heard of this, they sent the bailiff thither,
who asked them why they had made such a loud noise. They
replied that they had been praying; however, they had concluded
just before he came. Brother Matthias said, "We will call upon
God whether anybody opposes or not." In the evening about ten
o'clock they were separated again, and led away. On their way
through the city, they joyfully sang, and made known their
faith. Some of the councilors were bloodthirsty, and desired to
put them to death; but others were opposed to it; for they felt
persuaded, and confessed, that they were innocent. The
executioner came at least five times, expecting to execute
them, but his intention was frustrated each time. They intended
to execute the minister and Brother Henderick (who had defended
themselves and contradicted the most) first; if perhaps the
others might be deterred thereby. When the minister heard that
he was to die, he commenced to sing joyfully and thanked God
for it, and earnestly besought Him to count him acceptable.</p>

<p>The 23d of August was the day fixed for the execution of the
minister, Hans, and brother Henderick. They were brought before
the court into the vault near the pillory. Much people flocked
together, also some who were their friends, and had sent them
food and drink. They went smilingly through the people to the
place of execution, and seeing the great concourse of people
coming from every direction, the minister said, "O what a
beautiful feast day we shall have, since so much people are
coming." They were very joyful, and hoped to get into paradise
the same day, to their brethren and sisters that had preceded
them, and to all the pious, of whom he had known very many.
Revelation 6:11. There also came two monks, who sought to
mislead them with false doctrine. For awhile the minister
contradicted them, showing them how deceitfully they dealt; but
finally he refused to speak with them any longer, and said, "I
will adhere to the truth, and the hour of my departure is at
hand; I have something else to attend to now, than to talk with
you." When the time had come that sentence was to be passed
upon them, the seven judges could not agree in the sentence,
and sent word to them, that they would send them another
learned man to instruct them, whom if they should hear, they
would defer the matter for their best; otherwise they would
have to put them to death, though they did not like to do it.
But Hans and Henderick boldly said they would remain steadfast,
and depart from the truth neither to the right nor to the left,
and that on their account they need not spare them or delay any
longer, but might pass sentence; but if they thereby sought
more accusation against them, they acquiesced in what it
pleased the Lord to do. The lords put their heads together, and
dismissed the people assembled. When the two men perceived that
sentence was not passed, they were sorry, since they had
completely resigned themselves to death, and thought that they
had contended long enough against the wiles of the serpent.
Thus the multitude dispersed, leach going to his own, like
people that had lost a battle. When evening came, they had to
go back to prison, which caused them sorrow, since they had
hoped now to seal the truth with their blood; but they had to
wait for another time. Their being taken back to prison, caused
much thought among the people; some said that God opposed the
matter, and had frustrated it.</p>

<p>One of the councilors had firmly resolved that their
execution should take place at the end of eight days, and not
be deferred any longer; however, this also proved futile; for
they remained in prison until in autumn, and had to suffer and
be tempted much yet; after which they were condemned and
executed.</p>

<p>Hans Smit, as the minister, was first executed. When being
led through the city, he sang joyfully; he did not speak much
afterwards, but went briskly to the place of execution, as a
patient, dumb lamb. There he was strangled at the stake with a
rope, and then bound fast with a chain, and singed with fire.
Thus he offered his sacrifice, on the 19th of October, A. D.
1558. Three days after, the others were brought forth, and
sentenced to death, namely, Henderick Adams and his
brother-in-law, Hans Beck. There was one among the councilors
at Aix-la-Chapelle, who was always violently opposed to the
brethren, and hence it happened on one occasion, when they were
disputing with Hen-</p>

</div><div id="591"> 

<p>derick, and the latter would not be moved, that this
councilor became angry, and said, "Away with them, away with
them, to death and the fire; for all is lost on them; no pardon
should be offered them any more," etc. But Brother Henderick
said to him, "You will not live to see my death;" which was
verified, for he died three days before Henderick, on the same
day that the minister Hans Smit was executed. When on his
deathbed, and near his end, he fell into great despair, plucked
out his beard, and cried out most dreadfully, declaring that he
had judged many persons, and had certainly sinned therein, and
that God would punish him for his bloodthirstiness. He also
said many other things of a similar character. Ps. 55:23.</p>

<p>Now when Brother Henderick Adams and the other brother were
led to death, the executioner bound his hands so tightly that
his fingers turned black; but he lifted up his hands to God,
praising Him, that he was counted worthy to suffer this. In the
meantime the bonds on his hands became loose. They were tied
again, just as hard as before; but it was of no avail; for When
he lifted up his hands again, the bonds fell off as before,
which occurred several times, so that the judge became angry,
and said to the executioner, that he should bind them fast; but
the executioner replied, "You can easily see that binding is of
no use here." The last time Henderick flung the bond away among
the people, so that he was not bound any more, and said, "It is
not God's will, that I should be bound." He also said that such
violence was contrary to God, and continued to speak boldly
unto the end. Thereupon these two brethren, Henderick Adams and
his brother-in-law were (like previously the minister)
strangled at the stake, with a rope, and then bound to the
stake with a chain, and singed with fire; which took place on
the 22nd day of the month of October, A. D. 1558. A great
number of people were present on this occasion, as was also the
case afterwards when the brethren Matthijs Smit and Dileman
Snijder were executed, on the fourth of January, 1559. Thus all
five valiantly and steadfastly testified with their blood to
the divine truth, though some of them had not yet become united
with the church.</p>

<p>The sixth brother that had been apprehended with the others,
through much disputation with the ungodly, apostatized from his
faith; but after he was released he sincerely bewailed his
apostasy, earnestly and truly repented, and again joined the
church. The six sisters that had been apprehended at the same
time, were severely scourged with rods, and then allowed to go
their way, and thus returned joyful in the Lord, and constant
in faith, to their fellow believers that were known to
them:</p>

<h2>GOTTHARD OF NONENBERG AND PETER KRAMER,<br />
A. D. 1558</h2> 

<p>Gotthard of Nonenberg and Peter Kramer were both of them
faithful men, who walked to edification among the brethren in
the duchy of Berg, where the truth of the Gospel began to shine
again at that time, and very many came to the faith and
knowledge of the truth. Thus these two men were called and
chosen ministers of the church and providers for the poor
[deacons], which office they assumed, and for a time faithfully
discharged, and as they sought to live godly in Christ Jesus,
the consequence was that they had to suffer persecution, as
also appeared, since both were apprehended in one night, and
brought to Winnick. There the steward took them, to vent upon
them his arrogance, and to treat them with contumely. But they
firmly resolved in their hearts, to adhere to the truth.</p>

<p>They lay there in prison a long time, and had to endure many
temptations and conflicts in order to make them forsake the
truth, in which case they should be free to return to their
wives and children; and their lives should be spared. But the
love which they had for their Lord would not permit them to
abandon the truth, and turn to the doctrines of men. They much
rather forsook their wives and children, and their temporal
possessions, yea, finally even their lives, flesh and blood,
which they would rather give for a spoil, that they might enjoy
the crown, and that their names might be found in the book of
life. When the time for their trial had come, they were brought
before the learned, who employed many subtle stratagems against
them. But these men, with the divine help, repelled all their
subtle and insidious wiles undauntedly and fearlessly, and
sought no other counsel or way; but as Christ had gone before,
so they endeavored to bear His cross after Him; whereupon they
were sentenced to be executed with the sword.</p>

<p>When brought forth from prison, to be taken to the place of
execution, these men were and remained firm and immovable as a
wall, and determined to adhere to the truth, and not to
separate from the faith. When all saw their boldness, and
perceived that they were upright, pious persons, and had to die
simply on account of their faith, nearly every one wept; the
steward, the judges, deputy, and executioner as well as the
common people. But the hearts of these people were full of
gladness, and they joyfully sang with a cheerful mind. Again
they were approached with various wiles, the comfort of life
being held out to them, in order to bring them into
despondency. This continued for a long time, until two o'clock
in the afternoon; so long did the steward delay the matter,
thinking to intimidate them, in hopes that they should turn.
For this reason he made strenuous efforts to bring them over to
his views, so as to induce them to go to church, and hear the
doctrine of the priests. But when the steward did not succeed
in bringing them over to his views, he called the executioner,
into whose hands the prisoners were delivered. The executioner
acted with reluctance, and received them with tears; for his
heart misgave him. But Gotthard said to him, "How I have</p>

</div><div id="592"> 

<p>longed for this day; why do you delay so long?" When the
executioner began to bind them, he said to them, "Dear men, be
not afraid; for Christ also was bound innocently." When the
steward heard these words he said to the executioner, "You must
not speak in this manner." Then Peter said,"We will adhere
firmly to the covenant of the Lord, which we trust we shall not
break." Thereupon Gotthard began to speak, and said, "Here we
must suffer tribulation. He that would hereafter be crowned,
must fight valiantly now. As the bridegroom went before, so the
.bride must enter into joy through much suffering and
tribulation. This we are taught by the words of Christ. The
fact that the Lord was executed between two murderers, lightens
the cross and affliction; hence we fear neither slaying nor
killing. For if they have done this in the green tree, what
shall be done in the dry? Luke 23:31. The servants of God must
drink the sour wine now here upon earth; but when we get to
Christ, we shall drink new and sweet wine with Him. Matt.
26:29. We must first bear affliction." With this, they reached
forth their hands, and willingly suffered themselves to be
bound, which astonished many. Yea, the common people were
amazed, and said, "What marvelous thing behold we here I these
men so willing to go to death, when they could easily obtain
their liberty." Gotthard said, "We do not die, but pass through
death into life eternal, to God and to all His dear children;
of this we have a sure hope; hence accept this death with joy,
and trust that we shall please God." When the time had come for
them to die, they rose to their feet, called upon God in
heaven, and, as brethren in Christ, and as a token of brotherly
love and unity, kissed each other with the sweet kiss of peace,
as those that were united with God, and were thus beheaded
standing. But since they were executed unjustly, the
executioner said with great fear and trepidation, that he
should never execute such men again.</p>

<p>After their heads had been severed from their bodies, the
common people began to go home; but the steward called out to
them, saying, "Don't be in such a hurry, but help bury these
pious men first; they did not die for any crime; they are
neither thieves nor murderers; they were pious of life and
conduct; they embraced a faith which the lords and princes
could not understand, and hence they had to suffer." Thus these
pious witnesses of God were buried, and the seed of their blood
did not remain without fruit in that place. To God be all the
glory. Amen. This happened about the year 1558.</p>

<br />

<h1>JACQUES D'AUCHY, IMPRISONED A. D. 1558, BUT PUT TO DEATH AT LEEUWARDEN, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST,.IN THE YEAR OF OUR LORD 1559</h1>

<h2>A Confession of faith of Jacques d'Auchy,
made when in prison in the city of Leeuwarden, in
Friesland; which confession he afterwards sealed with his
death.</h2> 

<p>I believe in one only God, the Father Almighty, Creator of
heaven and earth, as is written, in whom Abraham, Isaac, Jacob,
Moses, and all the prophets believed. Gen. 1:1; Heb. 11.</p>

<p>I believe in Jesus Christ the only Son of the Father, who
was from the beginning with God. And when the time which God
had promised was fulfilled, this Word became flesh, and was
born of the house of David, of a pure virgin espoused to a man
named Joseph, of the house of David; which virgin is blessed
among women. I believe that this true Son of God proclaimed the
word of His Father through many signs and wonders. And after
this He was delivered unto death under Pontius Pilate, and
crucified and buried. I believe that this same Jesus Christ
suffered for us. When we were His enemies, He suffered death
for us, that those who believe in Him should not perish, but
have everlasting life. I believe that this our Saviour was
raised up: from the dead, as He had predicted, and sits on the
right hand of God His Father. John 1:14; Micah 5:2; Gal. 4:4;
Rom. 1:3; Matt. 1:18; Luke 1:42; John 15:24; Matt. 27:2; Isa.
53:7; Rom. 5:10; John 3:16; Matt. 28:6; Mark 16:9, 19; Acts
7:56.</p>

<p>I also believe in the Holy Ghost, as testified by John in
his first epistle, 5th chapter, and 7th verse, where he
says, "There are three that bear record in heaven, the Father,
the Word, and the Holy Ghost: and these three are one." I also
believe in the communion of the saints, whose prayer avails
much. Jas. 5:16.</p>

<p>I also believe in the holy church, in which are those who
believe in Jesus Christ, who by one Spirit are baptized into
one body, as Paul says; and Christ Jesus is the Head thereof,
namely, of the holy church, as is written. I Cor. 12:13; Eph.
5:23; Col. 1:18..</p>

<p>I believe that this holy church has power to open and to
shut, to bind and to loose; and whatsoever they bind on earth
is also bound in heaven, and whatsoever they loose on earth is
also loosed in heaven. I believe that God has ordained in this
holy church, apostles, prophets, teachers, bishops and deacons.
Matt. 16:19; I Cor. 12:28.</p>

<p>I also believe and confess a baptism in the name of the
Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost, even as commanded and
ordained by our Lord Jesus Christ, and practiced and written of
by the apostles. And I also believe that all who have received
this baptism are members of the body of Jesus Christ, in the
holy church. Eph. 4:5; Matt. 28:19; Acts 2:38, 41; 16:31; Rom.
6:4; Col. 2:12; t Cor. 12:13.</p>

<p>With regard to the holy supper of Jesus Christ, I believe
and confess what Christ has said concerning it, as is
written, "As they were eating the supper, Jesus took bread, and
blessed it, and brake it; and gave it to the disciples, and
said, Take eat;</p>

</div><div id="593"> 

<p>this is my body. And he took the cup, and gave thanks, and
gave it to them, saying, Drink, and divide it among yourselves;
for this is my blood of the new testament, which is shed for
many for the remission of sins: this do in remembrance of me."
I believe this according to the declaration of Paul, who
says, "The cup of blessing which we bless, is it not the
communion of the blood of Christ? The bread which we break, is
it not the communion of the'body of Christ?""Whoso eateth my
flesh, and drinketh my blood, hath eternal life; and I will
raise him up at the last day." Matt. 26:26; Luke 22:14; I Cor.
10:16; John 6:54.</p>

<p>I confess marriage to be an ordinance of God; namely, a man
and a woman united in the name of the Lord, in the holy church.
For this cause shall a man leave father and mother, and shall
cleave to his wife: and the twain shall be one flesh.
.Wherefore they are no more twain, but one flesh. What
therefore God hath joined together, let not man put asunder.
The bed is undefiled; but whoremongers and adulterers God will
judge. Gen. 2:24; I Cor. 7; Matt. 19:5, 6; I Cor. 6:16; Heb.
13:4.</p>

<p>I also confess that fasting and praying is very profitable,
as practiced by the apostles. Matt. 6:16; Acts 13:2.</p>

<p>I regard the words of St. James as good and true, where he
says, "Confess your faults one to another, and pray one for
another that ye may be healed." Jas. 5:16. I believe that this
must be done with an upright heart.</p>

<p>I also confess that the higher powers are ordained of God,
for the punishment of the evil, and the protection of the good;
for they bear not the sword in vain; to which powers the
Scriptures command us to be subject, and instruct us to pray
for them, in order that, as Paul says, we may lead a quiet and
peaceable life. Paul also calls the power the minister of God.
Therefore since he is the minister of God, I would pray him
that he would be pleased to be merciful to me, even as God is
merciful. I hereby disclaim all fellowship with those</p>

<p>who would resist the power with the sword and violence,
which I regard as a doctrine of devils. Wisd. 6:3; I Pet. 2:13;
Rom. 13:1, 4; 1 Tim. 2:2.</p>

<p>I also believe in the resurrection of the dead, as it is
written, that all men shall rise from the dead in their own
bodies, when the Lord shall come in the clouds, with His
angels; then He shall judge every one according to his works.
Dan. 12:2; Job 19:25; Matt. 25:31; 16:27.</p>

<p>In short, I believe all that a true Christian is bound to
believe of the holy church; and I believe with my whole heart
in the articles, of the faith, and will live and die therein. I
hereby renounce all false doctrines, heresies and sects, which
are not in accordance with God and His Word. And if I have
erred in any respect through false doctrine, I pray the
Almighty God, to forgive me through His great love and
mercy.</p>

<p>Also, if I have sinned in any matter against theEmperor, the
king, or others, I pray them to forgive me through the great
love and mercy of God.</p>

<h2>CONFESSION OF JACQUES D'AUCHY, MADE BEFORE<br />
THE COMMISSARY AND THE INQUISITOR</h2> 

<p>When I had been in prison ten weeks, my first examination
took.place. On the third day of January, A. D. 1558, reckoning
the beginning of the year from New Year's day, the jailer came
to me in the afternoon, saying that I had to appear before the
commissary, in order to be examined concerning my faith. I was
ready with a glad heart, and went thither with the jailer. When
I entered the room where the commissary sat, I humbly saluted
him. He returned my salutation, and said, "Jacques, is your name
Jacques d'Auchy?"</p>

<p><i>Jacques.</i> "Yes, my lord."</p>

<p>Com."Jacques, I have come here commissioned by the king, and
the procurator general, to examine you with regard to the
articles of faith."</p>

<p><i>Jaques.</i> "Well, my lord, be it done then in the name of
the Lord."</p>

<p>After we had had many words together concerning the faith,
he began to ask me regarding the place of my nativity, my
residence, and my life from my youth up to the present time;
all of which I confessed to him. Thereupon I was led back to
prison by the jailer.</p>

<p>In the afternoon of the next day, namely, the fourth of
January of the same year, I was again brought before the same
commissary. As I stood before him, he commenced to revile,
vituperate and blaspheme the pastors and the flock of Christ,
saying, "Is it not a pity that we suffer ourselves to be so
deceived?"</p>

<p><i>Jacques.</i> "Yes, my lord."</p>

<p>Corn,."I speak of you and others, who forsake our mother the
holy church, and suffer yourselves to be deceived by a set of
mischievous idlers and vagabonds."</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i> I have not suffered myself to be deceived by
such."</p>

<p><i>Corn.</i> "No! when you believe such accursed villains and
beggars as Menno, Leenaert, Henderick van Vreden, Frans de
Kuyper, Jelis of Aix-la-Chapelle, and other such rascals, and
forsake us and the true Word of God, do you not then suffer
yourselves to be deceived?"</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i> "I have not forsaken the Word of God; for my
faith is founded upon the Word of God, and not upon men, nor
upon the doctrines of men, since the prophet Jeremiah exclaims:
'Cursed be the man that trusteth in man, and maketh flesh his
arm.' Jer. 17:5."</p>

<p>A little after this the commissary cried out, saying, "O the
miscreants, such as Menno and Leenaert, how many have they
deceived and led to all the devils and into perdition."</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i> "My lord, I entreat you not to say such words;
for it would be difficult and hard for you to prove that they
are such as you assert them to</p>

</div><div id="594"> 

<p>be." And, again, "They have not deceived, but have clearly
taught the Word of God. And I do not believe that those who
have believed in the Word of God, will go into perdition; but
the Lord shall judge all things well."</p>

<p><i>Corn.</i> "I will not dispute; for I myself receive
instruction from those that are taught in the holy church. But
I well know the character of you people, and of your doctrine:
had you but the power, you should gladly cut our throats,
which, as has been seen, you people have done at Munster,
Amsterdam, and other places."</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i> "O my lord, don't say such words against your own
conscience; for I am persuaded that you know much better; since
you have been in the council here for twenty years, as you say
(this he had told me before); hence it seems to me that you
know us better; for if we had such wicked hearts as to intend
murdering people, we should not thus deliver ourselves into
your hands; for were we only to speak against our conscience,
and conceal the truth from you, you would have no power over
us, since you can find no one that can accuse us with truth of
having wronged or injured any one."</p>

<p><i>Corn.</i> "Whence then originate so many sects and
heresies? whence springs so much uproar and mutiny?"</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i> "As far as the sects and heresies that are in the
world are concerned, as those of Munster or Amsterdam, or
elsewhere, we have in no manner fellowship or part with their
works, nor with their doctrines, but we regard them as
doctrines of devils. All these things cannot prevent the truth
from being truth, and the Christians from being true
Christians, any more than could in the days of the apostles all
the sects and heresies that were round about them, and had some
semblance of the Word of God."</p>

<p>After these and many other words which we had together, he
began to get milder in his manner, and said to me, "You must not
study so high, but suffer yourself to be instructed by those
who are more learned and wise than you, and you must believe in
the Word of God."</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i> "O my lord, how should I not believe in the Word
of God? For this same Word I am imprisoned here, and stand now
before you, to give answer concerning it."</p>

<p><i>Corn.</i> "You are not imprisoned for the Word of God, but
for your evil deeds."</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i> "My lord, have you heard any one complaining that
I wronged or injured him in any way?"</p>

<p><i>Corn.</i> "No; I have not heard that any complaint has
been made against you."</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i> "The Lord be praised, that it is not for my
iniquity, but for the testimony of the true faith."</p>

<p>Corn."Not so; but for your crimes, since you have offended
against his Imperial Majesty, and transgressed the command of
the king our lord."</p>

<p>lac."If I have transgressed the king's command, it is a
small matter, since I have fulfilled thecommand of that King
who is the true God and eternal King."</p>

<p><i>Corn.</i> "You have also transgressed the command of God,
and of our mother the holy church."</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i> "My lord, you cannot prove to me by the holy
Scriptures, nor can any one else, that herein I have
transgressed God's command."</p>

<p><i>Corn.</i> "It shall be proved to you. Well then, let us
begin to finish the articles in which I have been charged to
examine you."</p>

<p>We had many more words, which it would take me too long to
relate here, besides that I do not remember them well. The
commissary was somewhat discouraged,and listened attentively to
whatever I wished to say.</p>

<p>Thereupon he asked me when I came to Emden, and where I had
taken up residence, and whether I had been directed to these
people. I answered, "Yes."<br />
<i>Corn.</i> "Who directed you?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "A good friend."<br />
<i>Corn.</i> "In whose house were you?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I do not know the house in which I was."<br />
<i>Corn.</i> "Who was it that brought you to Leenaert?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "They were men and youths, women and maidens."<br />
<i>Corn.</i> "What were their names?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "As to their surnames, I should have had much to do,
to know them all by their names and surnames, since I was not
there long enough to learn them all."<br />
<i>Corn.</i> "When you came into the house, where was Leenaert?
What did he preach about?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "He preached the pure Word of God."<br />
<i>Corn.</i> "Of what, and of which articles did he preach?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "He taught amendment of life, and that we must put
off the old man, and put on the new; he forcibly showed by the
Scriptures that those who walk after the flesh, and after their
lusts, have no part in the kingdom of God."<br />
<i>Corn.</i> "Did he not speak of some other things?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, I should have much to do, to retain all,
even as it would cost you, I think, much trouble and labor to
retain a sermon that was preached eighteen months or two years
ago." <i>-Coin.</i> "Did you there receive your second
baptism?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I have received but one baptism, and that according
to the ordinance of Christ."<br />
<i>Corn.</i> "Did you not also receive a baptism in your
infancy?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I do not know what was done to me in my infancy, I
have no remembrance of it."<br />
<i>Corn.</i> "Did not your father or your mother tell you that
you were baptized, and did you not have sponsors?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Yes, I think they told me, and I have also called
some persons godfather and godmother, but this was not in
accordance with the Scriptures."<br />
<i>Corn.</i> "Well, was that not enough? Have you besides this
received something more from Leenaert, namely, water or baptism
according to your notion?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I received from him baptism according to the Word
of God." Coin."Do you not consider the baptism good which you
received in your infancy?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Had I considered it good, and a baptism, I should
not have received another; for it is written that there is one
Lord, one faith, and one baptism, and not many baptisms." Eph.
4:5. Coin."Did you</p>

</div><div id="595"> 

<p>receive the baptism which Leenaert administered to you in
the house in which you were assembled?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Yes."<br />
<i>Com.</i> "Was it after or before preaching?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "After preaching."<br />
<i>Com.</i> "Did he not speak of baptism?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Yes and he showed by the holy Scriptures what it
was, and what baptism signified; he humbly admonished the
applicants for baptism, to observe well and take good heed what
they accepted, and showed the cross and persecution which
result to them that have come so far; and many other
demonstrations from the holy Scriptures."<br />
<i>Com.</i> "Were you not afraid of the decree of the
Emperor?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "No; neither am I now."<br />
<i>Com.</i> "Jacques, it will go hard with you, unless you
submit to mercy for your misdeed."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, I expect mercy from the Lord; but I am not
aware that I have offended against the Emperor or the king, for
which I should look for mercy. And if the decree is contrary to
the Word of God, it does not appear to me that in fulfilling
the command of God, I offend against any one whoever he
be!"<br />
<i>Com.</i> "Jacques, Jacques, think what the decree says."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, I well know that it has more authority in
this world than the Word of God to put to death those who
believe on His name and depart from unrighteousness, as is
written that it should be so. (Isa. 59:15; Matt. 10:17). But
what will it signify when you shall have done with me according
to the decree, and shall have put me to death? You will have
nothing but a vile and mortal body, which is subject to
corruption; but as regards the soul, you cannot touch it, and
when you appear before God's judgment, you shall know what you
have done." Matt. 10:28. Com."Jacques, I do not seek your
death, God knows; I should be sorry to see you suffer in the
least."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, this will be seen in the end, how comes it
then that you thus shed the innocent blood here, when you do
not understand the faith as you have told me? Why do you not
ordain then that those who cannot recognize your faith to be
true and good, be banished from the country, with retention of
their life and property, as is done throughout Germany, and
also in Oostland,* which countries do not judge the Word of
God, to shed blood?"</p>

<p>After many other words he asked, "What do you think and
believe of the sacrament of the altar?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Do you mean the breaking of bread?"<br />
<i>Com.</i> "Yes."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I confess and believe as Christ ordained it, as the
apostles practiced it, and as Paul writes concerning it to the
Corinthians." Com."How do you understand it?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Just as it is written; I do not want to comment on
the Word of God." This satisfied him, and he so wrote it down
on his paper. Com."What do you think of the mass, confession,
and absolution of the priest?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "As regards the mass, I know it not, nor do the
Scriptures; I have never read this name in the Word of God."
Com."What shall I</p>

<br /><cite>*"East country," probably Austria or the Orient
is meant here.-Trans.</cite> 

<p>write then in regard to this?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I do not know; whatever you please, my lord."<br />
<i>Com.</i> "Will you not confess simply that you believe in the
ordinances of the true and holy church, according to the
teaching of the Scriptures and as a good Christian is bound to
believe?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Yes, my lord, with all my heart." He wrote this
down. Cont."Who were your instructors in this doctrine, and
with whom did you converse in the beginning, and in what
place?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I had my conversation at Antwerp, speaking of the
Scriptures with many, but my principal instruction and
foundations I derived from reading the holy Word of the Lord."
He also wrote this down.</p>

<p>Com."Now, see here is an important article, namely, whether
you have not been a minister, or a deacon over the poor, or an
exhorter, or have held some other office in the assemblies of
the brethren?" Thus it was written on his paper as well as I
could perceive or see. I did not know at first what he meant by
calling this so important an article: I answered thereupon, "No;
I do not feel myself qualified for it, but am a humble member
in the congregation."<br />
<i>Com.</i> "Were you never in a meeting, before you received
baptism?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Yes, two or three times at least."<br />
<i>Com.</i> "In what place was' it, and in what houses?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "As regards the houses, I. do not know to whom they
belong."<br />
<i>Com.</i> "What kind of houses were they, large or small?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "We assemble wherever we best can, as opportunity
offers itself, and I remember to have been in very poor little
houses, that resembled stables more than houses." He thus wrote
this down on his paper. Com."Did you also attend the meeting
with the brethren, after you received baptism?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, this answers for itself; you may well
suppose that if I was there before, I was there still more
afterwards."<br />
<i>Com.</i> "Is your wife of the same doctrine as you are, and
is she also rebaptized?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I have enough to do to answer for myself without
answering for my wife; and if she were here she could answer
for herself; but nevertheless, I regard her as a woman that
fears the Lord." This satisfied him.</p>

<p>On Saturday morning, the 8th of January of said year 1558,1
was brought into the same room, before the inquisitor, who had
lately been appointed here by the King of Spain, with full
power from him to bind or to loose, to release or to put to
death. When I came before him, I humbly saluted him; he
returned my salutation and said to me, "Jacques, I am very glad
of one thing, namely, at what the procurator general has told
me, that you are ready to confess your guilt, if it can be
proved to you by the Scriptures that you have transgressed the
commandment of God; and are in error; are you still of the same
intention, and will you accept the Scriptures?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Yes; and I am ready to listen to all good
instruction according to the Word of God." He had the
confession which I had made before the commissary, and asked
me, "Will you</p>

</div><div id="596"> 

<p>still confess that you received baptism from Leenaert?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My word is not yea and nay, but yea, yea, and as I
confessed, so I still confess openly." <i>Inquisitor.</i> "Was
not the baptism you received in your infancy enough for you,
without receiving another?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I do not regard the baptism which I received in my
infancy as baptism according to the Word and ordinance of God."
<i>Inq."I</i> shall prove to you; but do you not believe that
infants are born in original sin?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "David indeed says that he was conceived in sin,
even as all infants are; but sin is not imputed unto them,
since Christ has died to take away sin, as Paul testifies
everywhere in his epistles. And as by one man sin entered into
the world, and death by sin, so grace has abounded through
Jesus Christ." Rom. 5:12, 15.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "How are infants purified, if it is not done through
baptism?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "They are purified through the blood of Christ,
since He is the Lamb which taketh away the sin of the
world."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "How are they purified from original sin?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, I have told you, namely, through the blood
of the Son of God, who died for us when we were yet enemies,
and unbelieving."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Do you not believe that infants bear their sin from
Adam, till they are purified through baptism?"</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i> "This must be proved to me by the Scriptures; I
believe the word of the prophet, who says: 'The son shall not
bear the iniquity of the father, neither shall the father bear
the iniquity of the son; but the soul that sinneth it shall
die.'" Ezekiel 18:20.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "It is not to be understood thus; but the child is
impure until it has received baptism."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Are the infants purified through the external sign
of the water?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "No; but they must be purified with water, and then
with the Holy Ghost."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Which washing precedes; the external or the
internal?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "The external; and after these words: 'In the name
of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost' have been
spoken, they are purified internally."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, you say this without warrant of Scripture;
for Christ says that those are hypocrites who first make clean
the outside; but that first, that which is within shall be
cleansed, and the outside will be clean also." Matt. 23:25,
26.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "You err, and do not understand the Scriptures, and
have suffered yourself to be deceived by a set of
vagabonds."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, I rely not upon men; but it has not been
given me to understand it differently, and men can not give me
the faith; for it is written in the prophets, They shall all be taught of God.' Isa. 54:13. And Jesus
Christ says that no man can come to Him, except it be given him
of the Father. John 6:44. But now, my Lord, prove to me
exclusively by the Scriptures, that the baptism of little
infants is a planting and ordinance of God, and that it was
practiced by the apostles, and I shall believe it."</p>

<p><i>Inq.</i> "The ordinance was made by Jesus Christ, when He
said: 'Except a man be born of water and of the Spirit, he
cannot enter into the kingdomof God."' John 3:5.<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "'Christ is not speaking to infants, but to a doctor
in the law; nor does He speak of little infants that have just
been born; for He says afterwards in the same chapter: 'That
which is born of the flesh is flesh; and that which is born of
the Spirit is spirit. Marvel not that I said unto thee, Ye must
be born again. The wind bloweth where it listeth, and thou
hearest the sound thereof, but canst not tell whence it cometh,
and whither it goeth: so is every one that is born of the
Spirit.'" Verses 6-8.</p>

<p>After I had read this in his German testament, printed at
Zurich, I said, "My lord, if the external baptism of infants is
the new birth, we know whence it comes, for we can see it with
our eyes."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "How do you understand it then?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I understand it to be the new birth of him that was
in the old Adam, in the body of sin; that we must put him off,
and mortify and crucify the body of sin, together with all its
lusts and affections, in order to be born again unto newness of
life, after the new man Christ Jesus, as Paul testifies at
length."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "This is to be understood with reference to adult
persons; but the little infants that are impure, must be
cleansed with water, that they may obtain salvation."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "What do you believe concerning infants that do not
receive baptism here, according to the faith which you hold,
namely, from the pope?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "They all go to the devils."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "O my lord, it is written: 'If you judge, judge
righteously.' And Christ says: 'With what judgment ye judge, ye
shall be judged.' Matt. 7:2. You condemn innocent infants,
notwithstanding Christ says that theirs is the kingdom of
heaven." Matthew 18:3.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Those children were baptized or at least had
received circumcision, which served them instead of
baptism."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "The Scripture does not state that they were
circumcised, and you cannot show whether they were Jewish or
Gentile children."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "The inhabitants of Jerusalem and thereabouts in
Judea, were all Jews."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Luke makes a different statement, saying (Acts 2:5)
that at Jerusalem, in Judea, every kind of tongue under heaven
was represented." <i>Inq."Is</i> it not a sad thing of you
people, that you thus err in the Scriptures? Does not Paul say
that He [Christ] cleansed His church with the washing of
water?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Paul says: 'With the washing of water by the word.'
Eph. 5:26. Now, then, can you cleanse infants by the Word? or
only by the washing of water? for they cannot believe the
Word."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Then they are damned, since they do not
believe."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Don't speak thus; for they are innocent and poor in
spirit, and to such belongs the kingdom of heaven." Matt. 5:3.
He said as before, "First of all they must be purified by water
baptism, in order to attain salvation."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "The apostle Peter clearly declares that as the ark
which Noah had made preserved from death and the wrath of God
those who had forsaken the company of the wicked and of the
world, and had entered into it, so baptism is to us for
salvation; but</p>

</div><div id="597"> 

<p>the apostle does not at all esteem the baptism which takes
away the filth of the flesh, unless there be a good testimony
of a good conscience before God; and I do not believe that
infants have the testimony of a good conscience, since they
know neither good nor evil." I Peter 3:21.</p>

<p>He made no reply to this, but looked at me sharply, and,
after a few moments said, "Is it Calvin who writes: 'Attestation
(that is, testimony) of a good conscience?' These are the false
prophets that deceive you, people; but the genuine text does
not read so."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I am not imprisoned for the doctrine of Calvin." I
begged him again and again to let me read in his book, how the
apostle wrote it, namely, in his own testament which he had
before him, or in his Latin Bible, which was of very small
size, and translated and printed by Rombertus Stephanus, at
Paris. But however I prayed him, he would not let me read;
hence I said to him, "My lord, you ought not prevent me from
proving the word, since you contradict it." After additional
words he said to me, "Since you will not believe in the holy
teachers, such as St. Ambrose and St. Augustine (and a host of
other saints whom he named to me), and in the ordinances
instituted by the holy church, what then will you believe?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I believe only in the ordinance of Christ; or prove
to me that the apostles baptized little infants, and I shall
believe it."</p>

<p>He attempted to do this by the households that were
baptized, in which, he said infants might well have been
included. I replied that the Scriptures said nothing about
there having been any infants there, but that they clearly
prove that those households heard and believed the Word, as is
written of the jailer, and also of Cornelius, the centurion,
and all that were of his house, who received the Holy Ghost as
well as the apostles; namely, those who heard the Word. Acts
16:34; 10:45."Hence, my lord, you cannot prove to me, that
there were infants there." <i>Inq."I will</i> not insist upon
it that there were infants there, or that there were none
there, since it admits of doubt; but you must believe what the
fathers and the holy doctors have ordained concerning it in the
church, and practiced until the present time."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Did those teachers institute this ordinance with a
good intention; or did they institute it because it was an
ordinance of God, contained in the Scriptures?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "They did it according to the Word of God, with a
good intention."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, you well know how strictly the people of
Israel were forbidden to do anything according to their own
opinion, but that they were only to do what the Lord commanded
them. Deuteronomy 4:2. For Saul was rejected of God, because he
had not acted truly according to the word of the Lord which had
been commanded him, but had followed his own opinion." I Sam.
15:23.</p>

<p>After many other words, which we had together, he went away
from me, saying, "Jacques, I beg you, that you will well
consider this matter; for you are in error and deceived."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I am neither inerror nor deceived, and I have
already considered the matter: since you cannot prove to me by
the Scriptures that the baptism of infants is an ordinance of
God, hence I do not believe it."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Why do you want me to prove it, since you do not
believe in the holy teachers of the Catholic church, nor their
ordinance."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, it is written: 'Every plant which my
heavenly Father hath not planted shall be rooted up."' Matt.
5:13. After many other words he went away, saying to
me, "Farewell, Jacques; consider the matter well and pray
diligently to God." I also bade him adieu, and said that I did
indeed hope always to call upon the name of the Lord for help.
Ps. 116:4.</p>

<p>There were many other words that we had together, which I
have not written, because I do not remember them well, and I
was seized with an attack of fever. I have forgotten to write
his allegations with which he sought to prove that circumcision
was a figure of baptism, and hence, it [the latter] had to be
used in like manner; whereupon I proved to him by the
Scriptures, that circumcision was a figure of the covenant, and
signified nothing but that they were included in the covenant,
and children to whom belonged the promise. Gen. 17:11. But Paul
shows us that he is not a Jew or child of Abraham, who is one
outwardly, or according to the flesh of his seed; but he that
is one in the heart, as Christ says, that they are Abraham's
children, who do the works of Abraham, though they be Gentiles
according to the seed of the flesh. Rom. 2:28, 29; John 8:39.
And I showed him that baptism signifies the true regeneration,
even as Christ showed Nicodemus, and the putting off of the old
man, in newness of life, and that hence we had to be
regenerated, and not born anew, as they would assert; and that
where there was no regeneration, there was no need of a sign,
since this were only mocking God. John 3:5; Rom. 6:4. He said
to me, "Shall the infants have no part then in this sacrament?"
I told him that the sacraments had been left to be used in the
holy church, for those who have ears to hear, and hearts to
comprehend, and to understand the sacraments; and not for
infants. We conversed much more yet on this article, and I
showed to him .the abuse which they have in their baptism,
contrary to the Scriptures, and concerning the baptism of
prudent midwives, how that they regard it as good, and yet
rebaptize the recipients of it; I therefore told him that they
were Anabaptists.</p>

<p>On Monday, the 10th of January of the same year, I was again
brought before the same inquisitor, who, after a few words
asked me, "Have you made up your mind with regard to
baptism?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I have nothing else to say, than what I have told
you already: since you cannot prove to me with the Scriptures,
that the baptizing of little infants is an ordinance of Christ,
I do not believe in it, but hold to the baptism which Jesus
Christ ordained, and which He commanded His apostles.",<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "This the false prophets have taught you, of whom
the</p>

</div><div id="599"> 

<p>Scripture says that they shall come, and who have gone out
from us."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Such false prophets shall be known by their fruits,
says the Lord. And as regards your remark that they went out
from you, Paul, when at Miletus, showed to the elders of
Ephesus (Acts 20:30), that among them, and out from the flock,
there should arise wicked men, teaching perverse things-is it
not so, my lord?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Yes."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Is not, then, my lord, the baptism which you people
practice, a perverse and utterly contrary thing, since Christ
commanded to .baptize those who believed and were instructed
and taught. And the apostles baptized only those who received
the Word; but you people baptize only those that do not
believe, and cannot be instructed or taught, nor receive the
Word, since they are infants: which appears to me utterly
contrary, and like putting the cart before the horse."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "This is because you are in heresy, my child, and do
not believe the holy teachers; see how it will go with you.
Well then, let us speak of another article." And having seen
and read the confession which I had read before the commissary,
as I said before, he asked me, "What do you believe of the
eucharist?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "What is that?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Of the sacrament of the altar."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Do you mean the Lord's Supper, or breaking of
bread?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Yes, it is the same thing, eucharist, sacrament or
supper."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, it is not the same name; for, see, how the
apostles named it: Luke says that they brake bread from house
to house, and not the body of Christ." Acts 2:46.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "That which Luke speaks of there, is the Word of
God, which they distributed to every one."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, so say also David Joris and other
heretics, who abolish the breaking of bread. But observe, when
Paul was at Troas and they had gathered together in the night,
so that a young man fell down from the high loft, Luke says
that Paul continued his speech until midnight, so that the
young man fell through a window; and when they had come up
again, Paul having raised him up, they brake bread and eat
it; they did not eat the word; after which Paul talked till break
of day, and then departed." Acts 20:7.</p>

<p>When he heard this he looked at me sharply, and did not know
what to say."Do you not believe," said he"that when the priest
has pronounced the words, our Lord is in the bread, in flesh
and blood, just as the Jews had it in their hands, and
crucified it?" This question he asked me very many times, and
as I did not seek to dispute with him, I said, "My lord, if you can prove it to me by the Scriptures, I
will believe it." He urged me, saying, "Say yes or no, what do you believe of it?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "That which
the Scriptures testify with regard to it."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "I ask you whether you do not believe that He is in
the sacrament, in the flesh and blood, just as He was on the
cross?" Perceiving that he became heated, I delayed a little
with my answer.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Well, what do you say?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Nothing, my lord."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "That I hear, but why do you wait so long with
answering, yes or no?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord,it is written: 'Be swift to hear and slow
to speak.'" James 1:19.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Well then, Jacques, say but yes or no; if you
believe that He is in the bread, in flesh and blood, say
yes."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, if I were to say yes to you, how could I
prove it to you by the Scriptures, that He is there in flesh
and blood, after the priest has pronounced the words? for I
have never read it in the Scriptures, and since I could not
prove it to you, therefore I will not say that it is so."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Then you do not believe it, do I hear, No?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I believe nothing further concerning it than what
the Scriptures testify, and how should He be in the bread, my
lord? since it is written, that He ascended into heaven, and
sits on the right hand of His Father, until He shall have made
His enemies His footstool." Mark 16:19.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Do you not believe that He is able to sit on the
right hand of His Father, and also to be in the bread?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I believe that He is the Almighty; but He cannot do
contrary to His word; for He must be true, and He is the only
truth Himself." John 14:6.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Will you not believe this Scripture: 'Take, eat;
this is my body, which is given for you?' Do you not believe
then that it is His body?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Which do you believe to be His body, that which was
delivered and suffered for us, and sat at the table, and spoke,
or that which He held in His hand, namely, the bread? Was this
delivered for us, and did the bread die on the cross for our
sins? and did not the bread represent His body?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Both."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I have never read that there are two Christs, but
only one only Son of God." This I had often told him
before.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "These two are but one; and the wine, too, is His
blood, after the priest has pronounced the words."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Does the wine become His blood, after the word has
been spoken, and does it always remain blood, and not
wine?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "After the word has been spoken, the bread is His
true flesh, and the wine is the true blood of Christ, and they
remain flesh and blood."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "What then did Christ mean to indicate to His
disciples, when He said, This is my blood of the new testament, which is shed for
many for the remission of sins. But I say unto you, I will not
drink henceforth of this fruit of the vine.' Matt. 26:29, etc.
My lord, Christ calls it His blood of the New Testament, and
yet He indicates to His apostles, that it is still a fruit of
the vine, seeing He still calls it so, after He has said that
it is His blood."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Where do we find this written?"</p>

<p>I then took his German testament, which he had before him,
and read the passage to him. After I had showed and read it to
him, he said to me, "You must not govern yourself according to your own
understanding, but according to the exposition of the holy
teachers, such as St. Augustine, Ambrose, and others of the
ancient church."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I am well satisfied with St. Paul's exposition,
without seeking for many other expositions."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Where has Paul expounded the sacrament of the
altar?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Paul has expounded and indicated to the</p>

</div><div id="599"> 

<p>Corinthians, what the Lord's supper and the breaking of the
bread is."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Show it to me?" I still had his testament, and read
to him the tenth chapter of the first epistle to the
Corinthians, where Paul says, "I speak as to wise men; judge ye
what I say. The cup of blessing which we bless, is it not the
communion of the blood of Christ? The bread which we break, is
it not the communion of the body of Christ?" Verses 15, 16.</p>

<p>I had scarcely read this when he hastily replied, "This is
against you, for the apostle there clearly proves that there is
flesh and blood in the bread and wine, and that we are
partakers of the body of Christ."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord; if you please, let me read a little
further, and you shall see that Paul is not speaking of the
body of Christ in flesh and blood, as it hung on the cross; but
of His church, which is His body; for when He says that we have
communion, and are partakers of the body of Christ, he says:
'For we being many, are one bread, and one body: for we are all
partakers of that one bread."' Verse 17.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "The apostle speaks here of another body, namely, of
his church."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I do not find that Paul makes any distinction
between two bodies, but that he speaks of but one body of
Clfrist."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "What then do you understand by eating His body and
drinking His blood?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Just what Paul indicates, that it is the communion
or partaking of the body of Christ."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "My child, how deceived you are! Do you understand
then, that you can by communion be a partaker of the body and
blood of Christ, without eating and drinking thereof?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, I am not deceived, but my foundation is
the Word of God."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Well then, what do you understand by this
communion?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "The apostle tells us this, when he says, in the
same chapter: 'Behold Israel after the flesh: are not they
which eat of the sacrifices partakers of the altar?' Verse 18.
Behold, my lord, here is the simile by which Paul indicates it
to the Corinthians; do you not also understand it so, my
lord?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Yes."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, I do not think that you mean that those
who were partakers of the altar, therefore ate the altar, but
only the sac-:nces which lay on the altar."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Do you think that the same obtains with the
sacrament?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, it seems to me, that when we eat the
bread, we thereby signify that we have part in the body of
Christ; and yet we eat only the bread, and not Christ, just as
Israel did not eat the altar, but only the sacrifices and yet,
by eating the sacrifices, indicated that they were partakers of
the altar."</p>

<p>Looking sharply at me, he said, "What an error! and do you
not believe that in eating the consecrated bread we eat the
body of Christ?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Paul does not teach this, neither do I understand
it so." <i>Inq."Is</i> it not a sad thing of you people,
Jacques, that you do not believe the Word of God, which says:
'This is my body; this is my blood; do this in remembrance of
me?"'<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I believe the Word of God; Christ clearly indicated
that He should notbe there bodily, since He said that it should
be done in remembrance of Him. Paul also says: 'As often as ye
eat this blead, and drink this cup, ye do shew the Lord's death
till he come.' I Cor. 11:26. Hence He is not there bodily,
seeing He has not come yet."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "He is certainly there bodily, according to the word
of Christ, and all the holy teachers expound it so."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I think more of Paul singly, than of all the, other
teachers, and I hold only to Paul's exposition."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "You must also believe the holy teachers of the
Catholic church."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I believe the holy Scriptures, and only the Word of
God."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "If you believe the Word of God, you must believe
that he that (when the bread is consecrated, and the words have
been pronounced), receives it bodily, receives the body and
blood of Christ, since Christ says so, and He does not lie, but
speaks the truth."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I know full well that Christ speaks the truth, but
we must understand how He speaks when He says: 'I am the bread
which came down from heaven, and the bread that I will give is
my flesh' (John 6:51); do you believe this?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "No, do you believe it?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I shall not tell you, neither do we now dispute
about it; but because you say that we must believe as Christ
says; behold, when He says: 'I am the vine and my Father is the
husbandman.' John 15:1. Paul also says that the Rock of which
the children of Israel drank was Christ." I Cor. 10:4.
<i>Inq.</i> "No, no, all these words are not to be believed
thus; they are only types of Christ."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "So is this -expression."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "But this is a sacrament which is left us as a
memorial of the body of Christ."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, behold Israel after the flesh; the lamb
which they ate was called the Passover and a perpetual
memorial, that through the mighty hand of God they had gone out
of Egypt, out of the house of bondage; and so is also the bread
which we break, a memorial of Christ, who has redeemed us from
sin and eternal death, delivering us from the bondage of the
devil and the enemy."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Yes, according to the opinion of your pastors,
Calvin and Zuinglius, and like heretics, who have introduced
new doctrines; but we have been in this faith over fourteen
hundred years; why do you not believe us?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, should I believe because of the long time?
there were many heretics, such as the Sadducees, Nicolaitans,
Gentiles, and many others, who erred much longer yet. Turn to
the Scriptures alone, according to the example of the good King
Josiah." II Kings 22:11. <i>Inq."Do</i> you think so my son?
No, No."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, so did the children say to Jeremiah, when
they were out of the way. Jer. 18:18. You also well know how
they abused the grace of God, making a golden calf, praising
iit and saying: 'This is the god which brought us up and
delivered us out of Egypt.' Ex. 32:4. Thus your people now say
of the bread. It is Christ who died for us."</p>

<p>He became angry, and asked me, "Are we idolaters, because we
worship Christ?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "No, if He is in the bread; but if He is not in it,
what else</p>

</div><div id="600"> 

<p>are you?" IM."Well then, what do you believe concerning it?
say but a word, yes or no." <i>Jac.</i> "My lord, you have heard
that I believe that He sits on the right hand of His Father in
heaven."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "But in the bread?" <i>Jac."My</i> lord, I have told
you that I believe in regard to this according to the testimony
of Paul."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Then you do not believe, I perceive, that the holy
flesh of Christ is eaten as a sacrament?" <i>Jac."Do</i> all
who receive the bread, also receive the body of Christ?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Yes, completely, whoever they may be."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Does a robber, murderer, rogue, or other person who
is full of treachery, deceit and wickedness and who feels no
sorrow or grief for his evil deeds, but does still intend to
lead such a wicked life, does such an one receive the body and
blood of Christ?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Though he were the worst man in the world, yea,
even a Turk or heathen, if he came to the sacrament, he would
receive the body and. blood of Christ, as well as any other
person, yea, what is more yet, if -he were a beast."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "How, my lord, could it be possible, that the
unbelieving, ungodly and unrighteous, to whom eternal damnation
is promised, should receive the body and blood of Christ? It
would necessarily follow, contrary to all Scripture, God
willing or not, that they would have eternal life, and the
beasts as well as we, because the Lord has promised that
whosoever eats His flesh, and drinks His blood, has eternal
life; and thus the ungodly would have part in the body of
Christ and- of Belial, in light and in darkness, which is
impossible; as .Paul says." John 6:54.; II Cor. 6:15.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "How? do you not understand what Paul says, that he
that. eats this body, receives his judgment?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Hold on; my lord; do not break the Scriptures, for
Paul says: <i>this bread;</i> and not: <i>this body."</i> I
Corinthians 11:27. <i>Inq;</i> "Well then, whosoever eats of
this body, or this bread, and drinks this cup, unworthily,
receives damnation to himself." <i>Jac.</i> "My lord, he that
receives his judgment is far from receiving the body of Christ;
but it is the sentence .of his death that he receives."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Well then you certainly acknowledge these words of
Jesus Christ, 'Whoso eateth my flesh, and drinketh my blood, hath eternal
life' ( Jno. 6:54); hence, you -must certainly believe that we
can eat and drink Him; as He says." <i>Jac.</i> "I believe the
words of Jesus Christ but not in the manner the Jews did, who
were offended at Him, and said: 'How can . this man give us his
blood to drink, and his flesh to eat?' yea, even His,
disciples."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "This was because they did not understand it well."
<i>Jac.</i> ".This I readily believe; for if they had understood
it well, they would not have said it, and His disciples would
not have forsaken Him because of these words, as they did."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Understand well, my son, this was because they
understood that His flesh had to be eaten roasted or boiled,
like other meat; but He spoke of the sacramental eating;
otherwise the.eating would not have availed anything. But do
you not believe that we eat His flesh sacramentally,which is a
sacrament, which He left us under the form of bread and wine,
into which He has transformed Himself?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Then He left behind Him things that are good for
nothing."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "How <i>so?" Jac.</i> "For this reason, my lord, when
His disciples understood it so grossly, as you and others
do,.He said to them that the flesh profiteth nothing, but the
Spirit that quickeneth; and my words, said He, are spirit and
life (Jno. 6:63); hence, what, profit is it, if we eat His
flesh?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "This was because they did not understand it well,
as I have already told you." <i>Jac."My</i> lord, I indeed
believe that if they had understood it well, it would not have
been necessary for Him to indicate to them that He had allusion
to His Word."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "How do you know that He was speaking of His Word?"
<i>Jac."My</i> lord, I know that it was of His Word, even as it
is written that man shall not live by bread alone, but by the
word that proceedeth out of the mouth of God, which alone
quickens us in God unto eternal life." Matt. 4:4.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Behold, how your deceivers have instructed you in
their new doctrines." <i>Jac.</i> "My foundation does not rest
upon men, but upon the Word of God."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Why then will you not believe, like your mother the
holy church, that after the words are pronounced, the bread and
the wine are changed?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, I have already told you that it is because
there is nothing of this kind written in the Scriptures, for
neither the bread nor the wine which Christ gave were
changed."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Oh, certainly it was."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, I have proved to you, that He still calls
it a fruit of the vine, after the words were spoken."
<i>-Inq."Do you</i> not believe then, Jacques, that Jesus
Christ is Almighty, and that He had power to give His disciples
His blood to drink?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I know, my lord, that He is Almighty, and that He
was able to do it; and even if He had done it, my lord, has He
promised you, that. you people should also perform such a
work?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "But is Jesus Christ not able to leave us this in
His sacrament, for a testament?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Yes, my lord, had He said so; for He had power over
the .winds, and the devils, to change water into wine, and to
make Himself invisible. Matt. 8:26; John 2:9; Luke 4:30. In
short, I believe that He is Almighty in all things; but a
sinful man does not have this power."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Not! if he utters the same words of Christ?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "The power does not lie in the words; this would be
the same as sorcery. And if, any one were to say to a sick man:
'Be thou whole,' in the same manner in which Christ said it, it
would not heal him."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Then you do not believe that Christ Jesus is in the
bread?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, I think you have heard my resolution as
to what I believe with regard to it. Christ said that we,
should do it in remembrance of Him: now, if He-were present,
how could it be done in remembrance of Him?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Oh, how these villains, Zuinglius and Calvin, have
deceived you; those profaners of the sacrament, who pervert all
Scripture:into the contrary."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My faith is not</p>

</div><div id="601"> 

<p>founded upon the doctrine of either Calvin or
Zuinglius."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Upon what then?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Upon the Word of God, and the foundation of the
apostles."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "How? you do not believe the Word of God."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, how should I not believe the Word of God?
For this same Word I am a prisoner, and stand here in chains
before you, to bear witness to it."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "My son, it is for the word of Satan, and not for
the Word of God."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, take care what you say, lest you
blaspheme; for I have not quoted the word of Satan for my
doctrine and faith, but the pure Word of God; but you quote to
me the word and exposition of men."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "It is the word of the holy teachers of the church,
whom you reject; behold here the cause of your error."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I do not reject them, but I leave them undisturbed;
for I find material enough in the Word of God to lay a good
foundation, and water of life enough to drink in the pure
fountain, without running to the brooks or pools, which are
mostly filthy and turpid."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Well, this does not bring us any further; it is
late already; since you will not believe as our mother the holy
church instructs you, take heed and consider the matter well;
for you are in such error, that if you die in this state, you
will be damned to all the devils, in the depths of hell."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, it is written that judgment belongs to God
alone; how then do you so presumptuously usurp God's place? God
will judge me."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Jacques, this is all clear; for you do not believe,
and he that believeth not is damned, says Christ." Mark
16:16.<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "It is written, Judge not according to appearance, but judge righteous
judgment.' John 7:24. If I did not believe it, I would not
quote the Word of God in my defense." <i>Inq."All</i> heretics
do this. Well then, pray earnestly to God, that you may return
to the holy church."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I trust through the grace of God, that I have
become a member of the true and holy church, which has been
cleansed and purchased with the blood of Jesus Christ."</p>

<p>Thereupon he arose, and said to me, "Adieu, Jacques, see that
you come to a good conclusion; for your time is short; consider
the matter well. I also bade him adieu, and told him that I was
ready always to follow that which was best, in what should be
proved to me by the holy Scriptures, and nothing else.</p>

<p>We had many other words yet concerning this matter, for
about two hours; but I have forgotten them. He listens
attentively, and does not easily become heated; we spoke
sometimes in Flemish, and sometimes in French; for the most
part, however, I spoke in Flemish, because of the listeners
whom I heard before the door.</p>

<p>Behold here the two articles in regard to which one is most
tormented by them. Every time that he returned to me, he
brought some subtle Scripture with which to catch me; but, the
Lord be praised, I was always victorious. I have been before
them full eighteen or twenty times, and were I to write all the
discourses which I had with themin regard to these two
articles, I should require a ream of paper, so great was the
number of unscriptural comparisons and similes which they
adduced to me; but I always referred them to the Scriptures. If
there be anything in my hymns, which does not accord with this
writing, it need surprise no one; for though I were to write
never so much, I should not be able to write all that was
spoken between us. Thus they tormented me.</p>

<p>On Friday afternoon, the 14th of January 1558, I was again
brought before the inquisitor. I appeared before him, and he
saluted me cheerfully, for, as much as I could perceive, wine
had made him very merry; he brought no books with him. After we
had exchanged a few words with each other, he said to
me, "Jacques, the reason why I have come here, is simply to
learn your decision</p>

<p>for I will no more dispute with you about the articles of
faith, such as the mass, confession, indulgences, purgatory,
and invocation of the saints, or other ordinances of our mother
the holy church."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, I am well satisfied; I also do not seek to
dispute, but simply to believe what we are bound to believe, as
far as the articles of faith are concerned."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Yes, we have not much to do with disputing; for
Paul says: 'A man that is a heretic, after the first and second
admonition, avoid."' Tit. 3:10.<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, how can you reprove me for heresy, seeing
you have not yet convicted me of being a heretic."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Not? are you not a heretic, since you contradict
the Christian faith?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I do not contradict the faith, for all my purpose
tends to it; but you take one view of the Scriptures, and I
another, and no one can judge which is right, and which is
wrong, except spiritual men through the Spirit of God." I Cor.
2:15.</p>

<p>He laughingly asked me, "Have you the Spirit of God?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, you must not ask me this in jest; for I do
not boast of it; nevertheless, I trust through the grace of
God, that I am not actuated by the spirit of Satan."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Nevertheless, you are deceived and in error, and
Paul says that such shall be avoided after the first or second
admonition."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Since then you regard us as heretics, 6h, that God
would give, that you would at least use Paul's advice, that is
shun us, and withdraw from us, and not persecute us unto death,
and shed our blood in every corner."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Jacques, I do not seek your death, God knows."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, my God truly knows it well, and it will be
seen in the end."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Yes, we only do what we have been charged with and
commanded to do."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "By whom, my lord, by God or by men?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "We are commanded by God to avoid false
prophets."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "It is indeed true, my lord, that Christ admonishes
us to beware of false prophets, but He gives us a sign whereby
'to know them, namely, like a tree is known by its fruits. What
fruits have you seen on us, by which you could judge that we
are false prophets?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Enough everyday."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Wherein?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "In this that</p>

</div><div id="602"> 

<p class="c8">410-600, 196,365</p>

<p class="c8">1-600, 579,693</p>

<p>you have a false doctrine, which teaches men amiss, and
leads them into damnation."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, that our doctrine is false, is merely your
opinion; nevertheless, you cannot know that we are false
prophets, except by the fruit of the works, by which it may be
known whether we are false prophets or not; for Christ says:
'Ye shall know them by their works' (Matt. 7:16); but He does
not say, by their faith." <i>Inq."You</i> people justify
yourselves by your works." laic."No; but it is impossible to
gather grapes of thorns, or figs of thistles, or that a corrupt
tree should bring forth good fruit, according to the testimony
of the Lord."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Well, Jacques, as I told you; I have not come here
for the purpose of disputing, but simply to learn your
decision."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I do not wish to dispute either; but I want to
reply to you, that you unjustly accuse us of heresy and
deception."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Well, let us dismiss that; to what conclusion have
you come in regard to your confession? do you still hold to the
views which you confessed before the commissary?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Yes." <i>Inq."Will</i> you not then suffer yourself
to be instructed?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I seek nothing else, but always to follow that
which is best, most righteous and most virtuous, and I am not
so obstinate in my faith; if I would know a better way to
eternal life, than the one which I now have, I would accept
it."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Well then, concerning baptism and the sacrament, of
which we spoke together, what do you think in regard to
it?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Only that, my lord, which shall be proved to me by
the Scriptures; that shall I believe, and nothing else."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Then you do not believe the holy teachers of the
Catholic church, do I hear no?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I believe only the holy Scriptures."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "This is the reason why you are in heresy; that you
think more of yourself than of the holy teachers."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I glory not, save in the cross of Christ; but I
will not trust in any man; for it is written: 'Cursed be the
man that trusteth in man."' Jer. 17:5.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "I know that; but you do not believe the Word of God
either."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, do not say this; for it is not so."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Not? If our Saviour, taking the bread, says: 'This
is my body; and, taking the cup: This is my blood'; why then do
you not yet believe Him? why do you doubt it?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, I believe Christ's words, and do not doubt
them."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Yes, according to your own opinion, and with a
different meaning." Jdr."My lord, I trust that I do not
understand it differently from what the apostles understand it,
even as Paul expounds it." I Corinthians 10.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "You say so."</p>

<p>We had many more words yet about this article, also about
baptism, and a little afterwards about purgatory, and the
decree, in all for about an hour and a half; whereupon he left
me, showing me a very nice and friendly countenance, whether it
came from the heart, I do not know.</p>

<p>On the 20th of January of said year, I was again brought
before the same inquisitor. He asked me, "To what conclusion
have you come in regard to what I laid before you concerning baptism and the sacrament,
and what are your views in the matter?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I have nothing to tell you other than that you have
already heard from me."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Then, if I hear right, you remain opinionated and
obstinate?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, I should be sorry to be obstinate against
my own conscience; but as you cannot prove to me by the
Scriptures that which you believe, namely, that the baptism of
infants is an ordinance of God, and an apostolical practice,
and also, that the bread and the wine are changed into flesh
and blood, when the priest has pronounced the words over the
bread, this seems to me sorcery, and I cannot understand it
so." <i>Inq."You</i> may not doubt that the change takes place
through the power of God, for I have sufficiently proved it to
you by the Scriptures of God; but you will not believe."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, do not say so; for if you had proved it to
me by the Scriptures, I should gladly believe it; for all my
salvation lies in God's holy Word."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "I have quoted to you the Word of God; but you
believe nothing but your fanaticism and opinion."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, I beg you not to think this; if I knew
better, or understood it differently, I should not wish to
resist the Word of God against my conscience, being in the
state in which I am, namely, imprisoned for my life, in daily
expectation of death; or it might well be said that I was the
most miserable and unfortunate man that ever lived upon earth,
that I should voluntarily and premeditatedly seek pain and
suffering here until death, in order to obtain eternal
damnation."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Yes, my child, take good heed what you do; for if
you die in this evil faith and doctrine you have, you are
damned to all the devils."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "O my lord, how dare you speak so? It is written:
'Judge not, that ye be not judged; for with what judgment ye
judge (says the Lord), ye shall be judged."' Matt. 7:1, <i>2.
Inq.</i> "I judge you according to truth."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, do not say that; for you know not what you
judge."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Oh, yes, I do." And taking up an inkstand, which
stood on the table, he said to me, "As sure as I know that I hold this inkstand, so assured am
I, that if you continue in this doctrine, and die thus, you
will never see the face of God, but will be eternally
damned."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, do not judge so; for you usurp God's
place, and rob Him of His honor; for judgment belongs unto Him
alone."<br /> 
<i>Inq.</i> "Do you think that I do not know what I am
saying? and that I do not see that you are in error? no
heretics shall enter into paradise."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, you think that we are in error; but as you
people think of us, so we think of you."<br /> 
 <i>Inq.</i>  "Oh, it is
easy to know through the Word of God, who are in error and
heresy."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "True, it is easy to know for those to whom the Lord
has given the grace and wisdom. And for this reason I beg you,
my lord, not to take it amiss, if I speak somewhat boldly with
you, and open my heart to you."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "No indeed."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, as you people think that we are false
prophets and deceivers, so we think that you are; as you
think</p>

</div><div id="603"> 

<p>that we err, so we think that you err; as you think that we
deceive the people, so we think that you,deceive them, and upon
this we forsake life and all that we have in the world, to show
to you people, and to seal with our blood, the faith which we
have in God."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Nevertheless, this only tends to your
damnation."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "If it tends to our damna-,. tion, we are of all men
under heaven the most miserable (I Cor. 15:19); for we are cast
out, despised and rejected as abominable before all the world
(I Cor. 4:9), and flee from place to place, so that we suffer
continually in the flesh, and have no rest, and, according to
what you say, we are also to suffer after this life: no, no, my
lord, we feel quite a different witness and promise through.the
Word of God."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "This arises from the fact that you are deceived;
but it will avail you nothing." Jac,"Where then is the people
who must follow their Master through suffering and affliction
to eternal life, as Christ has said that they should be
hatedfor His name's sake." Matt. .10:22.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "This was spoken to the apostles only, "<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "How comes it then that Paul says that all that will
live godly in Christ Jesus, shall suffer persecution.? II Tim.
3:, 12. And the prophet says that the afflictions of the
righteous shall be many, but that the Lord delivers them out of
all evil." Ps. 34:10.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "This means that the devil will always cause them
enough temptation and affliction."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Paul speaks of persecution, and not of temptation;
nor can I conceive that Christ spoke of temptation, when He
said, 'They will scourge you in their synagogues, and persecute
you unto death, and will think that they do God service
thereby; and ye shall be hated of father and mother, brethren
and friends, and some of you they shall put to death." Matt.
10:17, 21; John <i>16:2. Inq."Well,</i> this was spoken only to
the apostles."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Does not Christ speak there of all that believed in
His name?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "He spoke to the apostles only, who should suffer
when going about proclaiming the Gospel; but that after-. wards
they should cease to persecute them."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "How came it that the churches suffered such cruel
persecution? and yet they were not all apostles."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "How so?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Even as Luke testifies, Acts 17:13, and Paul I
Thess. 2:14. Yea, you yourself, my lord, know full well what
Eusebius, one of the ancient teachers, writes in the eighth
chapter of his fourth book. In writing of the primitive church,
in what suffering and contempt they were, does he not say that
the people regarded them as robbers, murderers, infanticides,
and abominable men, and said that they committed incest with
their mothers and sisters, shed human blood in their worship,
and sacrificed their children unto idols; they were also
considered seditious persons; accursed villains, and enemies of
God and every creature, and were charged with many other
wickednesses imputed to them by the world,: is it not so, my
lord? as also the ancient writers Cyprian and Tertullian
write."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "It is so; this is all very true; but it was done by
those who had no knowledge of the Gospel."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I indeed believe that if they had believed the
Gospel, they would not have persecuted them, nor uttered such
slanders against them; but it has always been so, that even
those who boasted of having the Word of God persecuted them
that sought to fear the Lord, and to serve God with all their
heart, even as you see in Israel, those who ought to have
confirmed the honor and law of God; put to death the prophets
that were sent to them, and those who knew the Lord from a pure
heart." Jer. 18:18.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "For this reason the wicked are always among the
good, and the chaff remains with the good grain to the
end."</p>

<p>We had much more conversation yet in regard to this matter;
finally he asked me my, decision concerning baptism and the
sacrament, to which I replied as I had done at other times. He.
then left me, enjoining me to ask God to give me understanding
to return, as he said, to the holy Catholic church.</p>

<p>On the 27th of January of the afore-mentioned year I was
again brought before the same inquisitor. After a few, words he
asked me to what conclusion I had come with regard to what he
had said, namely, with reference to baptism and the sacrament.
Thereupon I replied to him as I had done at other times, that I
knew nothing better than to adhere to my first confession,
seeing I could not find in the Scriptures that which he laid
before me, and which he would constrain me to believe.
<i>lnq."Will</i> you then remain obstinate herein, and not
believe otherwise?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I am not obstinate, but I do not find in the
Scriptures that which you say I must believe."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Not? Do you not find in the Scriptures what you
must believe concerning the sacrament?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Yes, but not in the manner in which you believe;
for I cannot understand it so."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "The reason is you do not want to. understand
it."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "How, my lord, do you mean that I want to resist God
against my conscience? in this case I should be worse than an
irrational beast."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Why then do you not understand it?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Because it is not given me to understand it
differently; and be not surprised at this, for it is written in
the prophets, where the Lord says: 'They shall all be taught of
God."' Is. 54:13.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Nevertheless, it seems to me, that if I lay it
before you with the Scriptures, it is nothing but
opinionativeness and obstinacy, if you do not want to believe
it."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I cannot understand it so; think not that if I
understood it differently, I should want to find my pleasuse
and amusement here in being imprisoned and chained .day after.
day, having forsaken my wife and family, to my great damage,
expecting death from day to day, for this were contrary to
human nature."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Well then, believe only in the Word of God as it is
written there, and I will be satisfied, namely, that when we
eat the bread, we partake of the body of Christ, and when we
drink the wine, we have part in His blood, as Paul testifies to
the Corinthians." I Cor. 10:16.<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Be satisfied then; I, believe as Paul. testifies
there." <i>Inq."Do</i></p>

</div><div id="604"> 

<p>you believe then that there is a communion of the body of
Christ?" <i>Jac.</i> "Yes."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Well then, you cannot be a partaker of the body
without eating of it; hence you must certainly say that it is
the body of Christ which you eat." <i>Jac.</i> "Paul does not
say this."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "How can you be a partaker of the body without
eating of it?" <i>Jac.</i> "How did Israel become partakers of
the altar, who did not eat the altar, but only the sacrifices?"
I Cor. 10</p>

<p><i>18. Inq.</i> "Ha ha! See how Calvin or Zuinglius has
instructed you." <i>Jac."I</i> do not hold the doctrine of
Calvin or Zuinglius."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Whose then, Menno Simons'?" <i>Jac.</i> "My doctrine
and faith are not founded upon men, but upon the Word of
God."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Who then is the head and captain of you people?"
<i>Jac.</i> "Christ."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "But who is it that instructs you here upon earth,
who is your teacher?" <i>Jac.</i> "The Word of God."</p>

<p>When I perceived that he did not know to what church I
belonged, I did not want to tell or indicate it to him.</p>

<p><br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Nevertheless, you must be instructed herein by some
men." <i>Jac.</i> "We are not founded upon men, but upon the
living Rock."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Have you then no pastor or bishop?"
<i>Jac.</i> "Yes."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Who is it?" <i>Jac.</i> "Christ the Son of God."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "You know very well what I mean! but you do not want
to answer; however, have you any adherents of Calvin or
Zuinglius? are you opposed to Menno Simons?" <i>Jac.</i> "I
believe that there is not much difference between my faith and
Menno Simons'."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Do you then believe like Menno, that Christ did not
assume our flesh in the virgin Mary?" <i>Jac.</i> "My lord, you
said that you would not dispute about the matter; have you
changed your mind?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Well then tell me simply what you believe
concerning it." <i>Jac.</i> "I believe that He is the Son of God
in every respect, in flesh and spirit; but as to whence He took
His flesh, this I leave in the mystery of God; the apostles did
not dispute concerning it."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Yes, yes." We had also many other words yet, which
I have not written here.</p>

<p>On Monday, the 1st of February of the same year 1558, I was
again brought before the same inquisitor. After we had
exchanged a few words, he asked me,"Have you not prayed the
Lord for wisdom?" <i>Jac.</i> "Yes, and I need to pray to Him
daily."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "How is your conscience at ease?" <i>Jac.</i> "Very
well; the Lord be praised for it."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "What are your views concerning baptism and the
sacrament, about which we spoke?" <i>Jac."I</i> hold the same
views which I clearly stated to you before."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Will you not believe differently?" <i>Jac."I</i>
would believe differently, were it given lne to understand
differently; but I will not speak as a hypocrite against my
heart and conscience; for it is written that the Spirit of God
fleeth all deceit." Wisd. 1:5.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Then, as I perceive, you have come to a full
determination in regard to it." <i>Jac.</i> "Yes, until I am
instructed differently. My lord, do you suppose that these,
namely, baptism and the sacrament, are the only objectionable things to me in your
church?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Well, what else is there objectionable to you?"
<i>Jac.</i> "Many of the ordinances and institutions in your
church, concerning which I do not find a word in the holy
Scriptures."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Yet we have no ordinance or institution, which I
could not prove to you by the Scriptures." <i>Jac.</i> "Where is
the word <i>mass</i> recorded, or <i>purgatory,</i> or
<i>praying for the dead?" Inq."I will</i> prove it to you,
namely, purgatory, and that we must pray for the dead."
<i>Jac.</i> "Where is it written in the holy Scriptures?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Will you receive the books of the Maccabees?"
<i>Jac.</i> "Yes, indeed, for apocryphal books."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "What does <i>apocryphal</i> mean?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "The
ancients used this name, to indicate that they are not
authentic books, from which rules or ordinances may be
taken."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "It is true that the doctors had some difficulty
therein, but you may therefore not reject them."
<i>Jac.</i> "Yes, my lord, the reason why I will not receive
them, is not only this, that I will not trust in what men have
said, but also because I do not find that Christ or His
apostles received them, or quoted any testimony from them."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Yes, yes, where have you found that Christ or His
apostles quoted anything from the books of the Kings?"
<i>Jac.</i> "Enough."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Where then?" <br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, in the first
place it is written in Matthew (12:1), that the Pharisees
censured Christ, because His disciples plucked the ears of corn
on the Sabbath. And Christ answered them: 'Have ye not read
what David did when he was a-hungered and they that were with
him; how he entered into the house of God and did eat the
shewbread, which was not lawful for him to eat?' Hence I say,
that since Christ refers them to that which is written in the
books of the Kings, He thereby shows that He receives them as
authentic."*<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Well, do you find anything in the book of
Joshua?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Yes, my lord."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "What is that?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, you well know that James in his epistle
(2:25) adduces a testimony or example from the book of Joshua,
namely, the second chapter, when he speaks of Rahab the harlot,
who was saved by her works in faith."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Then you will not receive the books of the
Maccabees, because Christ and His apostles have not quoted any
testimony from them?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "No, and this for the reason, that they contain a
doctrine which is contrary to all Scripture, namely, that of
sacrificing and praying for the dead." Deuteronomy 13:1.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "If I would take the trouble, I could prove all our
ordinances with the Scriptures, such as mass, confession, image
worship, invocation of the saints, and others."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I think not, and even if we were agreed, my lord,
in every article, I should yet not want to unite with you,
unless you should prove to me by the Scriptures that it is
Christian-like to shed innocent blood on account of the faith,
as</p>

<p>* The passage referred to is I Samuel 21:6. The reader will
bear in mind that formerly the two books of Samuel were called
respectively the first and second book of the
Kings.-Translator.</p>

</div><div id="605"> 

<p>you do."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "This is on account of errors."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "And even though it were because the Scriptures were
understood amiss, yet I do not find in the Scriptures, that we
may put any one to death on account of his faith."</p>

<p><br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Oh, I can soon prove that heretics may be put to
death; for it is written that if any heretics or false prophets
should arise, they shall be put to death."</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i> "Yes, I have read the 13th chapter of
Deuteronomy, where it is written that if a false prophet, or
other person among them, should arise and teach them to go
after other gods, which they had not known, that false prophet
should be put to death, and stoned with stones."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Well then, see here a testimony that heretics may
be put to death."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, we are no more under the law, but under
the Gospel; and even if we were under the law, we would not
teach you to go after other gods, but after Him who created
heaven and earth, and His Son Jesus Christ."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "You certainly do it by your ordinances."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "The Israelites were not all allowed to put any one
to death because of difference in the use of the ordinances,
since they believed in the same God; but all this does not
answer our purpose; for what was commanded in the law is not
commanded in the Gospel of Christ."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Not, how so?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Because, my lord, in the law it was commanded, Eye
for eye, tooth for tooth, and to love one's neighbor, and to
hate one's enemy; but through Christ we are commanded quite the
contrary, not to resist evil, and to love our enemies." Matt.
5:38; Lev. 24:20; 19:18.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "True, but He did not command that heretics should
not be put to death."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "What does Christ mean then, when He says that we
must not root up the tares which are among the good grain,
fearing that in rooting up the tares, we might also pull up the
wheat; wherefore He commands, to let both grow until harvest;
but the harvest is not come yet." Matt. 13:29, etc.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "You do not understand this very well; for it is
easy to see whether they are tares or wheat."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Yes, for Him that knows the seed."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Yes, that is true."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, it is written that carnal men know only
carnal things; but the things that are spiritual knoweth no
man, but the Spirit of God." I Cor. 2:11, etc.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "This is very true." Ja,c."For this reason, my lord,
I should like to ask you something."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "What is it?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Have you the Spirit of God, or has the council
received the Spirit of God?" <br />
<i>Inq,</i> "No, I will not answer
this."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "How then shall you or those of the council be able
to judge spiritual things? for the matter of which we speak is
spiritual, and must be judged by the Spirit of God."
<i>Inq.</i> "You are judged only because you have transgressed
the decree of the prince."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "If his command had not been contrary to God's
command, I should not have transgressed it."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "It is not contrary to the command of God."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I wish you would prove to me by the Scriptures that
the decree of the Emperor or King is upright and just?"<br />

<p><i>Inq.</i> "I believe you think that all our fathers were
deceived, and that your sect is saved. What will you say? it is
full twelve or thirteen hundred years since Emperor Theodosius
caused the proclamation of an edict or mandate, to put to death
the heretics, namely, those who were then rebaptized, like your
sect."</p>

<i>Jac.</i> "Yes; my lord, you say that our sect has existed
only twenty or thirty years, but it has always been the case
that those who would live godly in Christ Jesus, have had to
suffer persecution, according to the words of Paul."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Thus speak all heretics."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Paul said it first; yet he was not a heretic."<br />

<i>Inq."I</i> am well aware that he was no heretic; but they
all use the words of Paul; but I tell you, decrees and mandates
for the putting to death of heretics are not a recent
invention, but this has obtained for fourteen hundred years
already."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "But it remains to be seen whether Emperor
Theodosius, of whom you spoke, did well, and a good work
according to the will of God, in issuing such a mandate."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Yes, he certainly did, since he well knew that they
were heretics."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, in his opinion they were heretics; but in
the opinion of those who gave their lives for the testimony of
their faith, he himself was a heretic and tyrant."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "How do you know that?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "This is self-evident; for those who put us to death
for our faith, we esteem no better than heretics and tyrants,
as may easily be presumed that also they did who were put to
death by Emperor Theodosius. Hence, this matter cannot be
judged save by the Spirit of God."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "No, no, you must not think that so many learned
doctors as were then in the Catholic church, would have then
permitted it, if it had been wrong to put heretics to
death."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I will not rely upon the ordinances or wisdom of
men; for I adhere to the instruction of Christ and His
apostles, who constantly admonish us to separate from false
prophets, and to shun heretics; but not to pursue them, or to
persecute them unto death." Matthew 7:15; Tit. 3:10.<br />

<i>Inq.</i>"My son, do you know why they did not put them to
death?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I believe it was because it was not pleasing to
God."<br /> 
<i>Inq."No,</i> no, Jacques, it was because they were not
powerful enough, and had neither king, nor prince, nor
magistrate."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Christ had power enough to call to His aid more
than twelve Jegions of angels, and the apostles had power
enough through the Holy Spirit, but they were called to be a
flock of sheep and lambs, as harmless as doves, and so changed
as to be like little children." Matthew 26:53; 10:16; John
10:27.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "It is true, it was so at that time."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "And shall now, my lord, the children of God be of a
different nature from what they were then, shall they have the
nature of wolves?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Certainly not; I do not say that."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Yet it appears to me, my lord, that those who now
boast of being children of God, have the genuine nature of
ravening wolves."</p>

<p>He looked at me sharply and said to me, "Why</p>

</div><div id="606"> 

<p>do you think so?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Because, my lord, Christ calls His people sheep and
lambs; and it is the nature of a flock of sheep, that if they
see any beast approaching, and perceive that it is a wolf, they
all flee, yea, though they were a thousand of them against one
wolf, and they do not pursue the wolf, to devour him, and to
shed his blood; but they who boast of being the flock of
Christ, do the very opposite; whence do they get this
nature?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "This comparison is good for nothing, and the
allegations are useless; for it does not obtain with the flock
of Christ, as with a flock of sheep."</p>

<p>Seeing that he rejected this, I asked him, "Is it not
necessary that the children of God should be born of God, as
John testifies? (John 1:13) and must they not be of such a
nature and disposition as their Father and Lord?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Yes, but why?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Because it is written that the Son of God was led
as a lamb or sheep to the slaughter, and opened not His mouth;
hence His children must be of such a nature, since they are
born of God." Isaiah 53:7; Luke 8:32.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "This I it had to come so.<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Why?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "That the Scriptures might be fulfilled."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Thus it must also be with regard to His children,
in order that the Scripture may be fulfilled."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "What Scripture?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "This: 'If they have persecuted me, they will also
persecute you; remember the word that I said unto you, the
servant is not greater than his lord.'"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "This He said to His apostles."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I understand it as having been spoken by Him of all
His children, and as having been written for our
instruction."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "No, no, my son; you must understand that the
apostles were sent to proclaim and preach the Gospel to every
creature, and the Lord predicted that much suffering should
come upon them, and that they should be put to death; but after
they had gained a prince to the faith, they had rest, and might
well put to death the heretics in their country."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, the Scriptures do not say this, nor can I
conceive that it can be the nature of a lamb, to kill and
devour a wolf; for you people say that you are the flock of
Christ, and that we are ravening wolves, and you put us to
death; this does not seem right to me."</p>

<p>Thereupon he laughingly asked me, "Jacques, was not Peter
also a sheep of Christ?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, if he was chosen of God, he also belonged
to the flock." Matt. 10:1.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Answer, yes or no."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I believe that he was not only a sheep of the flock
of Christ, but even a shepherd."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Well then, he, who was a sheep, killed two
persons."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Whom?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Ananias and his wife Sapphira."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "How did he kill them, seeing he had neither stick
nor sword? Was it not the Spirit of the Lord?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Nevertheless, he did it."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, do not give the glory to men, as though
they could do this by their own power; for they were killed
through the Spirit of the Lord; moreover, it was not for such a
cause as that for which you put people to death; but it was
because they lied against the Holy Ghost." Acts 3:12; 5:3.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Well, Jacques, my son, this brings us no further;
see that you consider the matter well, reform, and become
converted to the faith of your fathers, for you are in error;
hence believe as a good Christian is bound to believe, and do
not attempt so many things."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Faith is the gift of God, says Paul." Eph. 2:8;
Rom. 12:3; I Cor. 12:9. I <i>nq.</i> "Yes, it is truly the gift
of God."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Hence men cannot give it."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Certainly not; we must pray to God for it."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "How comes it then, that they want to compel me to
believe, by threats of death?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Time is given you, to become converted."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, how much time? six, seven, or eight days,
as I have seen in Brabant; can one change his faith so
speedily?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i>" I know nothing about Brabant, but here
we give people six weeks at least, to see whether they will
believe, when the Word of God has been presented to them."<br />

<i>Jac.</i> "Why do you say, my lord, if they will believe it?
You talk as though they could believe of their own accord, and
yet you say that faith is the gift of God. The apostles had
heard the Lord Jesus, who was full of wisdom and truth, for two
or three years, and yet they could not comprehend well, as you
may gather from the two disciples who went to Emmaus. Luke
24:13. Paul also had heard the apostles and disciples; yet he
could not comprehend, but cast them into prison. Acts 9:1. But
when it pleased God, He made manifest His will to them, at the
time which He had prepared, and not at any man-appointed
time."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "That was because they had not yet this doctrine,
and as it was in the beginning, they could not comprehend
it."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "It was because it was not given them, or because
they were not drawn by the Father (John 6:44) . Why do you not
also wait until God does His will with us?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "You have heard for a long time, and time is still
given you for consideration; you have three weeks yet from this
day, to consider the matter."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, do you not mean that after three weeks I
shall be put to death?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "You may turn yet in the meantime."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "But if it be not given me, to understand
differently, and I cannot comprehend otherwise, how shall I
turn?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "For this reason time is given you, in order to see
whether God will not show you mercy that you may become
converted."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, I have in mind just now the children of
Israel, who were besieged in the city of Bethulia, and suffered
from scarcity of water, so that their wives and children died
for thirst, and they said: 'There is no hope from God for us
any more; let us deliver the city into the hands of the
enemies.' Judith 7:23, etc. Thus you people also say: 'There is
no more hope that he will turn; let us deliver him to death.'
And as Ozias, the ruler of the city, thinking to give good
counsel, said to the inhabitants: 'Let us yet wait five days,
and if within these five days there come no help from the Lord,
we will deliver the city to our enemies.' My lord, were they
not sharply rebuked by a widow named Judith, who said to them:
'Who are ye that have tempted God this day, and stand instead
of God</p>

</div><div id="607"> 

<p>among the children of men, and would comprehend his
purpose."' etc. Judith 8:12, etc.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "This cannot be compared to your case."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, it appears to me to be the same thing; for
you .people say that if no help comes from God within the time
appointed us by you, we must be delivered to death, and
according to what you say, we are damned to all the
devils."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Jacques, there is no doubt about it."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "But how do you expect, my lord, to escape God's
judgment, since you thus send us away to damnation? why do you
not leave us in the hand of God until the end? for as long as
we live here, hope may always be entertained of reformation,
seeing you think that we are damned; but after death there is
no longer any hope."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "I do not drive you to damnation; for I am not the
one that judges you; nor ,will I be guilty, of your death."</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i> "My lord, when Susanna was unjustly condemned to
death, who bore the punishment, the judges, or the
witnesses?"</p>
<i>Inq.</i> "They that were guilty."<br />

<p><i>Jac.</i> "My lord, the judges were rebuked by Daniel; but
the witnesses were rebuked and punished."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Do you think that I am witness in your case? I have
come here simply to instruct you."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, yet I regard you as the principal
witness; for upon your testimony will the judges sentence me
to death, or release me, since for this purpose you have been
sent here, and appointed by the king." <i>Inq."I do</i> not
wish them to condemn you upon my testimony; nor do I want to
judge."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, when the judges will ask you in regard to
me, what will you answer? will you not say that I am a heretic,
and have deserved death?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "No."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, I pray you, what will you say?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "That you are deceived, and seduced from the right
way."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "To be seduced, to err, or to be a heretic, my lord,
appears to me to be all the same thing."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Well, my son, think not that I have come here to
condemn you to death; for you will be sentenced only upon the
confession which you made before the commissary; for, as
regards myself, I do not wish them to sentence you upon my
word; nor would I have anything to do with it."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, I have not followed my business so long,
and sat in the council for seven or eight years, so that I
should not know what this amounts to; but the reason why I tell
you this, is to warn you not to stain your hands with my blood;
for I well know for what purpose you have been sent here." He
now arose, and went away. The words just related we frequently
had together afterwards.</p>

<p>On Monday, the 7th of February, 1558,  I was again summoned
before the same inquisitor. When I appeared before him, he
saluted me, and asked, "How are you; have you the fever yet?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I am well, the Lord be praised for it; the fever
left me three weeks ago, or thereabouts."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "How are you at ease in your conscience?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Very well, the Lord be praised for it."</p>

<p>He then made a long speech, too long to be briefly related,
the sum and substance of which was, that he entreated me very
much, that I should return to the holy Catholic church, and
believe as becomes a good Christian, without investigating such
high things, and wanting to be so wise. Thereupon I replied, "I
investigate nothing but what I am permitted to believe; and I
am well content, simply to believe that which a good Christian
is bound to believe." Sir. <i>3:21. 1 nq."You</i> indeed say
that you want to believe as a good Christian, and yet you have
a heretical faith."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I have no such faith; but my faith is founded only
upon the pure Word of God; and if you were content with the
Word of God, you would also be satisfied with my faith."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "True, you quote the Word of God; but in your heart
you understand differently, "<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "As we believe, so speak we; and since we adduce to
you the Scriptures, which are the Word of God, for a testimony
of our faith, why are you not satisfied with it? for it belongs
to God alone, and not to men to search the heart."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "What. then do you believe concerning Jesus Christ;
whence did He take His flesh?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Do the Scriptures teach you that you must ask me
this?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Because Menno says that He brought His flesh from
heaven."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I have not heard him say this."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Yet he believes it."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Menno's belief is that the Word was made flesh,
acording to the testimony of John 1:14, or as the text in your
Testament reads: became flesh."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "What do you believe concerning it?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I bethat Christ is the Son of the living God."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Whence did He take His flesh?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I do not know, except that He is born of the
Father."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Do you not believe that He took His flesh in the
womb of the virgin Mary?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, if you can prove to me that Jesus and His
apostles compelled any one to confess this, I will also confess
it to you; for when Peter confessed Christ, that He was the Son
of the living God, Christ did not ask him of whom He was made,
but said that upon this rock He should build His church. Matt.
16:18. Again, when Candace's eunuch said to Philip, that he
.believed that Jesus Christ was the Son of God, and desired to
be baptized upon this faith, Philip was satisfied, without
inquiring as to whence He had taken His flesh." Acts 8:36.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "It was not necessary at that time to make such
inquiry, since no difficulty existed yet concerning the
matter."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "What need is there now?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Because there are so many heretics."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "There were enough heretics also in the days of the
apostles; but the reason is this, that Satan always causes some
vain controversy, to corrupt men's understanding, and to draw
them into error."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Then you will not confess that He took His flesh
and blood in the virgin?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I will not investigate that which is above my
understanding, ndmely, whereof the Son of God was made; for
this was a miraculous work. However, that you may not think me
a heretic, I confess Him to be the Son</p>

</div><div id="608"> 

<p>of God in every manner, in power and might, in spirit, in
flesh and blood, begotten of the own substance of one only
Father, namely, the eternal God, as the Scriptures testify to
us; who was with the Father from eternity; and when the time of
the promise was fulfilled, the eternal Word became flesh, and
was conceived in a virgin, of the Holy Ghost, and born of said
virgin Mary." <i>Inq:</i> "He assumed His flesh from, and was
made of, our flesh; will you say nothing with regard to
this?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I am satisfied with believing in regard to it
acording to the Scriptures, without further investigation."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Do not the Scriptures say that He took upon Him our
flesh?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I have never read it, and I do not wish to dispute
further; besides, you said that you would not dispute about it;
why then do you ask me so much concerning it?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "In order to see whether your faith is not like the
faith of Menno Simons."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "You have heard that I do not receive the testimony
of men, as a foundation for my faith."</p>

<p>Perceiving that he could get nothing else out of me, he
asked me, "What is your determination?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I have declared my faith to you, and thereupon I
have made my determination, until the contrary be proved to
me." <i>Inq."I</i> have proved it to you sufficiently; but you
will believe nothing but your fancy and obstinacy, and have
forsaken the holy church."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, I have not forsaken the holy church; for
if I had recognized your church as the holy church, I should
not have forsaken it; to join another."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Nevertheless, though Satan has thus deceived you,
and you think that we are not the holy church, yet it is the
same that it has always been from the times of the apostles,
and been maintained through the holy teachers until the present
time."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "If it is the same church which existed at the time
of the apostles, it must have the same or like bishops and
pastors as were then."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Yes, and so we have."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Well then, my lord, show me in your whole church
only one bishop or pastor who is blameless in doctrine and
life, even as Paul, or Timothy, or Titus, and I will follow him
with all my heart."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Have you such pastors- among you?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, you say, that we are Satan's
congregation,and that your church is the same which was in the
time of the apostles; hence show me those people, whereby I may
know them."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Where do you think to find such? for they had the
Holy Ghost, who is not given now."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Not! How comes it then, that Paul says that he that
has not the Spirit of God, is none of His?" Rom. 8:9.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "This has another meaning."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord; what meaning?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "He there speaks of those who do not walk after the
Spirit."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Well; for what else do I ask you, than for bishops
and pastors who walk and are led by the Spirit of God, who are
holy, just, vigilant, and blameless in the doctrine, in life
and conversation, as Paul teaches that they must be."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "I could easily name such bishops or pastors as are
blameless, but you do not know them."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Where are they?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "In Italy and in Spain."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Is the church of God there, and not here?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "There is also a cardinal or bishop in England, who
truly is a man blameless in doctrine and conversation."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, pray release me from these chains, and let
me go, and I shall use all diligence to get to him, to see
whether it is true."</p>

<p>'He laughingly replied, "No, no; you must believe what is
told you."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, it is written</p>

<p>'Cursed be the man that trusteth in man.' Jer. 17:5. Shall
-I depend upon your word alone?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Do you think that I lie?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I do not say that; but I want to see it first
before I believe it."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Yes, yes, but you cannot now."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Since I cannot see it, I cannot believe it
either."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Why will you pay so much attention to their
conversation, seeing they have the doctrine of the
apostles?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "This is yet to be proved to me, and it would be
difficult for you to prove to me by the Scriptures, that they
have the doctrine of the apostles."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Nevertheless they have it; but you are hardened,
and cannot comprehend it."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "This assertion lacks the support of the Scriptures,
and if they are trees from the roots of the apostles, show me
the fruits, that I may know them."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Can you then know the faith by the works, whether
it is good or bad?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, our Master has taught us that we shall
know the false prophets by their fruits (Matt. 7:16); for when
we find grapes on the vine, we dare not say, like you people
do, that we have plucked them from thorns."</p>

<p>He laughingly said to me, "Do we say that?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Do you not? do you not say we are evil, vile and
useless trees, that must be cast into the fire? And yet you
have confessed to me, that our fruits are good, but that it is
our faith."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "It is true, you do good works before men; but the
inward is good for nothing, for your faith is not good."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Our works spring from our faith; the vessel cannot
give forth anything but what is in it; hence the Lord calls
those a generation of vipers, who confessed that the fruit was
good, and the tree corrupt, saying: 'Either make the tree good,
and his fruit good; or else make the tree corrupt, and his
fruit corrupt.' Luke 6:45; Matt. 12:34.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Therefore you would say that our bishops and
pastors can have no good faith, unless their works are
good."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, I can answer with Paul: 'They profess that
they know God; but in works they deny Him, being abominable,
and disobedient, and unto every good work reprobate' (Tit.
1:16); and such pastors I will not follow." <i>Inq."No,</i> no,
Jacques, they are not so abominable as you think, though they
are also sinners, even as we all are."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, you know better than you say; for I should
be ashamed to discover the shameful acts of this people, who
boast of being the light and salt of the earth, and the leaders
of the blind and ignorant."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "What shameful acts? tell me freely."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, since you desire me to tell you, you know
very</p>

</div><div id="609"> 

<p>well yourself, what unnatural whoredom, too shameful to
mention, such as was committed by Sodom and Gomorrah, those of
Rome commit namely, the pope, who boasts of being a holy man,
and God upon earth, and the cardinals and bishops that are
there; to say nothing of the pride, pomp and wickedness of
which these holy people are guilty."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "It is true, that there are some who commit great
abomination before God, so that it is abominable of some; but,
Jacques, we must not condemn the good on account of the bad;
they are not all bad; there are also some that are
righteous."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I believe that the righteous are thinly sown; for
from my youth I have lived mostly among priests, canons and
monks, and it were a shame to relate the abounding wickedness
which I have seen there."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "My son, not all, not all."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, so far as I have ever seen and known, I do
not know that I have seen a single one walk after the rule
prescribed to a bishop or pastor, even as you know better
yourself what occurred two or three weeks ago in this city of
N. in the convent of the Jacobines."</p>

<p>The monks of Jacobines had driven their prior out of the
convent, because he had reproved them for their licentiousness
and wickedness.</p>
<i>Inq.</i> "Jacques, though there have been wicked popes,
cardinals, bishops, priests, and monks, there have, on the
other hand, also been good ones; do you not know that the good
grain is not without chaff? No, no, there are good grains and
good pastors, though you do not know them."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Show me then but a single upright pastor, such as I
demanded of you, according to the Scriptures, and I will follow
him."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Though I should name them to you, you do not know
them any way, and will not believe me; but even if it were
true, namely, that they are wicked, yet they have the true
faith."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I hold to the testimony of Paul, that light has no
communion with darkness." II Cor. <i>6:14. Inq.</i> "Do you mean
to say then, that a man who commits evil works cannot have the
true faith?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "If a man that has received knowledge, yield himself
to the commission of wickedness, his faith will not last long,
or will soon be darkened."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Who has told you this?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Paul writes to the Romans, that some held the truth
in unrighteousness, since that which might be known of God, God
had showed them; and though they knew God, they glorified Him
not as God, neither were thankful; wherefore God gave them up
to the lusts of their hearts, filled with darkness." Romans
1:18.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Paul speaks there of the philosophers, who turned
to the heavens, stars, planets, etc., for guidance."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "That is all the same to me, of whom he speaks,
philosophers or others; but Paul shows that through their works
and ingratitude their hearts were filled with darkness.
Moreover, he also says: 'Because they received not the love of
the truth, that they might be saved, . . . for this cause God
shall send them strong delusions;' which also came to pass." II
Thess. 2:10, 11.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Did not Judas Iscariot commit a wicked work in
delivering up the Son of God?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "The Scripture says that it would have been better,
if he had not been born." Matt. 26:24.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Yet he had a true faith; what do you say to
this?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Had he a true faith before or afterwards?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Before and also afterwards, though he was a
thief."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Though his heart was wicked, yet his walk was good,
so that they did not dare think that it was he who should
commit the deed, but all asked: 'Is it I? is it I?'" Mark
<i>14:19. Inq.</i> "Look also at Demas, did he not have the true
faith? Yet his heart was bound up in things of this world;
nevertheless, Paul regarded him as a brother." Col.
<i>4:14.</i><br />
<i>Jac.</i> "It is true that Paul regarded him for a time as a
brother and companion in the work of the Lord; but after he
said that Demas had forsaken him, having loved this present
world, and no longer calls him a brother or companion." II Tim.
<i>4:10. Inq.</i> "That you do not know."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "The Scriptures say nothing about it."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "That proves nothing either way; you must believe
that. a sinful man can have the faith and the Gospel; do you
think that we must therefore not hear him, and believe his
word?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, wherein do you reprove Paul of sin, after
he had received the knowledge of the truth?" <i>Inq."Is</i> it
not written: 'He that saith that he hath no sin, maketh God a
liar?"' I John 1:10.<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "True, but it is also written in the same epistle:
'Whosoever is born of God doth not commit sin; for his seed
remaineth in him: and he cannot sin because he is born of God.'
I John 3:<i>9.</i> And Paul said: 'How shall we, that are dead
to sin, live unto sin'." Rom. 6:2.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Paul there simply asks a question; but do you
therefore think that he did not sin?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "You know that Paul said that Christ was living in
him; did Christ then commit sin? Gal. 2:20. He also exhorts the
Corinthians, to follow him, even as he had followed Christ, and
calls God and men to witness, how holily and justly, and
unblamably he had walked among them. I Cor. 11:1; I Thess.
2:10. Of what sin then, my lord, will you accuse Paul?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Nevertheless, he was a sinner; this you certainly
cannot deny."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I do not want to deny it; for he says himself, that
he was the chief of sinners, blasphemers and persecutors while
in unbelief, but not after he had received the knowledge [of
the truth]. I Timothy 1:15. Well then; but what I ask you for,
are pastors that are blameless in life, doctrine and
conversation; for I well know that all men are born in sin; but
he that abideth in sin, hath not known God." Ps. 51:5; I John
3:6.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "You must not thus understand the passage; for a
sinful man does have knowledge of God."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Yes, with the mouth: or it would not be true what
the apostle Peter has said, that he that has not the fear of
God, and brotherly and living love, is blind, and gropes with
the hand for the way." Tit. 1:16; II Pet. 1:9. <i>Inq."No,</i>
he says that he is like the blind."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, with your per-<br />

</div><div id="610"> 

<p>mission, he says that such a blind man gropes for the way,
which is a sign that he has not found it; now, shall I follow
such people?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Your Menno, is he so just, holy and blameless?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I have not had sufficient intercourse with him, to
find anything blamable in him."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "With whom then have you had your intercourse? can
nothing be said of your teacher? is he unblamable?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, can you produce anything against him, or
accuse him of anything?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "I do not know the rascal."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Then do not defame him; for you would find it a
difficult task to prove that he is what you call him."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "This would not be difficult for me to do; for he
has seduced enough people to be called this."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, take care that you are not yourself one
who seduces the people."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Is he not a native of a certain village in
Zealand?" He named the village, but I have forgotten it.<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I do not know where he was born."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "What kind of looking man was he? What sort of beard
and clothes did he have?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, you are certainly inquiring very
diligently for him; I think you would like to betray him; do
you know no other way, my lord?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "I wish him no
harm."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I hear that you say so; nevertheless, you would
like to have him here in my place, would you not, my lord?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Yes, if he would become converted."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "And if he would not be converted to your views,
would you not place him to the stake?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "I should leave this to the judge."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Well, would you not then wish him harm? Would you
want to have this done to you?"</p>

<p>Perceiving that he could not answer me, and that two or
three persons were listening at the door, besides the jailer,
who is always with the prisoners, he commenced to give me a
long talk, saying that I must not inquire so deeply into the
Scriptures, but suffer myself to be instructed by those more
learned than I, and that I must believe that a sinful man, of
wicked life could have the faith as well as another and that I
must hear his words, but not do after his works.<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Must I believe this by the Scriptures, or without
the Scriptures?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "I have proved it to you by the
Scriptures."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "By what Scriptures?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "By the cases of Judas and Demas, who had faith, and
yet were wicked of life."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, it appears to me that our words are mere
child's play; have I not replied to this, and proved to you,
that it becomes us not to take those who have apostatized from
the faith for leaders and pastors?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Where do you expect to find blameless pastors such
as you demand? do you not see that the world is full of
knavery?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "If you do not know any, I know some, and such I
will follow."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Where are they?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "They are unknown to you; do you not know that when
the prophet thought that all the righteous in Israel had been
slain by Ahab and Jezebel, the Lord said that there were seven
thousand left yet, who had not bowed their knees unto the idol
Baal." I Kings 19:10.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "It was because of the persecution raging at that time, that they were so
scattered."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Thus it is yet at the present day on account of
persecution, that they are scattered, and unknown to the
world."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "But must you for a Menno, or any other single
individual, who seem to lead a good life, must you therefore
follow him, and forsake all the other bishops and pastors, who
do not walk just as uprightly?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, do you think that if Ahab, the King of
Israel had forsaken the counsel of the four hundred prophets,
and followed the single advice of poor Micaiah, he would have
done amiss?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Certainly not; for Micaiah was a prophet of
God."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Did not the others say that they were too? and did
they not smite poor Micaiah on the cheek, because he prophesied
against them, and say to him: 'Do you think that the Spirit of
God has departed from us?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "They boasted of the
Holy Spirit, but falsely; for they did not have Him?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Ahab did not know that; for because Micaiah had
alone prophesied against the four hundred prophets, the poor
man of God was cast into prison on scanty bread and water, till
Ahab should return from the battle at Ramoth-gilead; but he
found that the counsel of the four hundred prophets cost him
his life, as Micaiah had foretold him."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "The events recorded in these passages occurred in
former times."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Paul says that all was written for our learning;
and the same things still happen at the present day." Rom.
15:4.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Well then, you will not hear or follow any pastors,
except they practice what they teach?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "No; for it is written: 'The light of the body is
the eye; if thine eye be evil, thy whole body shall be full of
darkness."' Matt. 6:22.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Then you will not follow the advice of Jesus
Christ, namely, to do after their words, and not after their
works."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "To whom does He say this?" <i>Inq."To</i> His
disciples."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Of whom does He say it?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Jesus Christ says: 'The scribes and the Pharisees
sit on Moses' seat: all therefore whatsoever they bid you
observe, that observe and do; but do not ye after their
works."' Matt. 23:1, 2. lac."What kind of seat was it, wooden
or stone?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "It was the seat that was there."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "How could so many people sit in one seat? Was it so
large? Or was it not the law Christ alluded to?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "It is the same thing, the law which they
proclaimed."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "The law was a command of God, and not of men, and
when Christ said this, He did not choose them to feed or lead
His flock."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "When He said: 'Do after their words, and not after
their works, did He not appoint them pastors?"'<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Have you not read what the Lord says: 'Except your
righteousness shall exceed the righteousness of the scribes and
Pharisees, ye shall in no case enter into the kingdom of
heaven.' Matt. 5:20. Behold, here they are already excluded;
how then shall they lead others?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Do only after their words."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "Have you no other pastors among you, to proclaim
the Word of God, than such scribes and Pharisees, whom God has
threatened with so many</p>

</div><div id="611"> 

<p>curses? Does not the prophet say: 'Blessed is the man that
has not sat among the ungodly'? Ps. 1:1. And Christ admonishes
us to beware of their leaven." Matt. <i>16:6. Inq."You</i> must
not understand it thus, but believe that an ungodly man can
indeed speak good things."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "it is written: 'Praise is not seemly in the mouth
of the ungodly, because they are not sent of God.'.Sir. 15:y.
'And how shall they preach, except they be sent?"' Romans <i>1
U:15. L nq.</i> "It is true, it is not seemly, but he does not
say that it is not good."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "if it is not seemly, then it is not acceptable; for
what repentance can an . impenitent man proclaim? For, if a
thief admonish his companion not to steal any more, will his
word have any effect? Will not his companion say: 'If it is
wrong to do it, why do you do it yourself?' Rom. 2:21. Y e
hypocrites, cast out the beam out of your own eyes, and then
shall you see clearly the dust in my eyes." Matt. <i>7:5.
1nq.</i> "You pervert every Scripture into the contrary,
according to your own notion and understanding; you must not
build upon yourself so much, but subject your understanding to
the understanding of those that are wiser than you are."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "My lord, I always speak, with your permission, that
if anything better is proved to me, I will follow it."</p>

<p>He arose and said, "It is time for me to go; see that you
consider the matter well, and pray diligently to God."<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I know of nothing to consider, since you cannot
.prove to me anything different."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "What should I prove to you?"<br />
<i>Jac.</i> "I have asked you to show to me what pastors I must
follow, and whether they are such as the Scriptures decree that
they ought to be in life, doctrine and conversation, "
<i>Inq."Follow</i> those whom your parents followed." Thereupon
he left me.</p>

<p>Here I finished writing, because I was finally surprised by
many persons and gainsayer's.</p>

<p>This confession of Jacques was translated from the French
into the Dutch., "Blessed are they which are persecuted for righteousness'
sake: for theirs is the kingdom of heaven. Blessed are ye, when
men shall revile you, and persecute you, and shall say all
manner of evil against you falsely, for my sake. Rejoice, and
be exceedingly glad; for great is your reward in heaven; for
so' persecuted they the prophets which were before you" (Matt.
5:11, 12).</p>

<h2>HOW JACQUES D'AUCHY WAS BETRAYED, APPREHENDED, AND FELL INTO THE HANDS OF THE</h2> 

<h2>TYRANTS, AND WITH WHAT PUNISHMENT</h2> 

<h2>THE RIGHTEOUS GOD VISITED THIS</h2> 

<h2>TYRANT AND TRAITOR-A MEMORABLE AND INSTRUCTIVE EXAMPLE TO ALL TYRANTS ,</h2> 

<h2>AND TRAITORS</h2> 

<p>There was a councilor at Harlingen, by the name of Mr. de
Wael, who very diligently sought Jacques, addressed him in a
friendly manner, and invited him to his house, saying that he had a letter for
him. When Jacques arrived there, he cordially welcomed him, and
urged him much to be his guest, seeming to be kindled with
great love for old acquaintance' sake. When he learned that
Jacques could not stay, he, with friendly words, but the heart
of a Judas, asked him to come again and bring of his wares and
work with him, ostensibly for the purpose of buying of him,
Jacques being a peddler. In the meantime he secretly sent a
messenger to Leeuwarden, to the council, for a commissary and a
bailiff. When Jacques came again to him, he affably greeted
him, sending in the meantime for the. bailiff. When the latter
arrived, the traitor malignantly said, "Apprehend him, behold,
this is the man." Thus they handled him with great severity,
saying, "Hold still," and searched him all over.</p>

<p>Then Jacques said, "Oh my lord, what have you done, that you
have thus betrayed me, who trusted you with my life and all my
property? why do you seek my life, and thirst thus for my
blood?" He replied, "Be content and suffer yourself to be bound:
you must go with me to the prison." He said he had to do this,
to fulfill his oath, and read to Jacques his cruel, tyrannous
mandate. He also made very strict inquiry for four other men.
Jacques replied that he would not betray or deceive any one,
but if he had aught against him, or had heard any one complain
of him, he should tell him of it. The traitor replied that he
had not heard anything of the kind, and that he was not
apprehended on account of any crime, but simply because he had
adhered to heresy; he, moreover, asked him whether he was not
an Anabaptist. Jacques denied having adhered to heresy, and
being an Anabaptist, saying that he had received but one
baptism, according to the Word of 'the Lord, upon his faith.
When asked concerning the Roman church, Jacques replied that it
was not of God. Upon this the traitor was seen to sigh deeply,
his countenance simulating great sorrow as he said, "Oh Jacques, must you fall into my hands?" Jacques
replied, "My lord, I had placed confidence in you, on account of
our old acquaintance, and because I had intercourse with you so
long; but I will gladly and from my heart forgive you for this,
and it is my earnest desire that the Lord may have mercy upon
you." He thanked Jacques for this favor, opining that in this
he had not sinned before God, since he had to act according to
his oath. Jacques said, "Do you consider this transaction right
before God and men? The time will come when you will find it
otherwise." Wisd. 5:2. He then sent Jacques into the room and
said to him, "You will be examined at Leeuwarden concerning your faith
and doctrine." While Jacques was imprisoned there, his wife
came to him, upon which this friend of God was filled with
great sorrow and anxiety, beholding her in such exceeding grief
since she was also pregnant. The turnkey thrust her from him
with great cruelty, but many of the</p>

</div><div id="612"> 

<p>bystanders most heartily wept with her, and entreated the
turnkey, saying, "Oh, let her go to him;" but it could not last
long. Jacques said to her, "O my beloved, go home, and comfort
yourself in the Lord; for 1 am imprisoned here.for the Word of
God; and it will tend neither to your shame nor disgrace, since
I have injured no one." She said, "May the Lord strengthen you
in the truth; for after this conflict there is prepared for you
an eternal crown. Oh, that I could die with you, and inherit
that blissful life .with you, then my heart would rejoice."
Jacques said, "O sister in the Lord, let not this grieve you,
though I must go a little before you; it is the Lord's will."
The turnkey could not bear this, but said, "Begone, quick!"
Thereupon Jacques entreated him, saying, "Oh, let us alone with God for a little while." And thus
these two dear lambs were separated, but hope to meet again at
the resurrection of the just, where wailing and parting will be
heard no more forever. Phil. 3:11; Rev. 7:17; 21:4; Isa.
25:8.</p>

<p>Having, through the grace of God, undergone and endured
manifold assaults, by way of numerous examinations and threats
from the bloodthirsty, he died in great steadfastness for the
testimony of Jesus. He was not put to death at the place of
execution, but secretly murdered by night. Until quite recently
trustworthy persons were still living, who early in the
morning, after the night in the forepart of which he had been
murdered, saw him in his leather clothes, lying dead in his
blood. He now rests under the altar of Jesus, awaiting, with
God's chosen, a blessed- resurrection and eternal life.</p>

<p>The above-mentioned traitor, Mr. de Wael, was not long after
this deed most severely smitten by God in punishment for his
murderous treachery, in consequence of which he departed out of
this world in a most awful manner, as a solemn and significant
warning to all that are inclined to follow his example in this
respect; for he was soon driven from Leeuwarden, with great
reproach and ignominy from the common people, so that the
boatman, who was to convey him away, was with him in danger of
his life, so that he begged most urgently that his life might
be spared; for the traitor- was most unmercifully pelted with
stones by the common people and the children, and ignominiously
reproached for his treachery, being called a Judas, rogue,
miscreant and arch-heretic. To his great disgrace and reproach
they sang of him the following verses, which had been composed
by Jacques</p>

<p class="c3">"He said: I had to find you-</p>

<p class="c3">Now from my oath I'm free;</p>

<p class="c3">Submit and let us bind you;</p>

<p class="c3">To prison go with -me."</p>

<p>And also</p>

<p class="c3">"And is it right your dealing,</p>

<p class="c3">Before the Lord and men?</p>

<p class="c3">The time is surely coming</p>

<p class="c3">When you will doubtless ken," etc.</p>

<p>God the Lord had also punished him with severe leprosy, with
which he was likewise most ignominiously taunted. Whenever they
had sung a stanza of said hymn, they would derisively
exclaim, "You leprous Judas and treacherous rogue, do you ken it
now?" The stones increased the longer the more, so that the
boatman who was to convey him away, saw his own life imperiled,
and cried out that he had to convey him off by order of the
lord. Thus he was driven from Leeuwarden with great disgrace
and ignominy, and had to roam about from place to place, an
object of scorn and contempt, until he was finally consumed by
leprosy, and, like Antioch and Herod, died a terrible and
premature death, an example to all his followers. II Macc. 9:9;
Acts 12:23. The reports among the common people concerning this
matter, are of a still much more horrible nature, than the
account we have given here.</p><br />

<h1>CONFESSION OF A WOMAN CALLED CLAESKEN, WHO LAID DOWN HER LIFE FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS, A. D. 1559</h1>

<p class="c8">Questions and answers between the commissary and
Claesken</p>

<p>The commissary first interrogated me concerning my name, the
place I was from, my age, and other like things. He then asked
me, "Are you baptized?" <i>Claesken.</i> "Yes." Copra."Who
baptized you?"<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "Jelis of Aix-la-Chapelle." <i>Com.</i> "The deceiver;
he himself has renounced his belief. How did he do when he
baptized you?"<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "He baptized me in the name of the Father, the Son,
and the Holy Ghost."<br />
<i>Com.</i> "Where did you receive baptism?"<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "At Workum, in the field."<br />
<i>Com.</i> "Were there others present?"<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "Yes." <i>Com.</i> "Who were they?"<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "I have forgotten."<br />
<i>Com.</i> "What brought you there?"<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "I have forgotten."</p>

<p>I could truthfully give this answer both times.</p>

<p><i>Com.</i> "Are your children not baptized?" Cl."My youngest
two are not."<br />
<i>Com.</i> "Why did you not have your children baptized?"
Cd."Because I was satisfied with them as the Lord had given
them to me." Com."Why were you so satisfied with Abraham and
Sicke, and not with Douwe; you had Douwe baptized?"<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "I did not know it then."<br />
<i>Com.</i> "What did you not know then?"<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "What I know now."<br />
<i>Com.</i> "What do you know now?"<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "What the Lord has given me to know." Corn."What has
the Lord given you to know?"<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "That I cannot find it in the Scriptures, that this
ought to be."<br />
<i>Com.</i> "How long have you not been to church?"<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "Not for nine or ten years."</p>

<p>These are the questions which he put to me; but he used far
more words, and when I did not readily answer him, he said that
I had a dumb devil in me, that the devil transformed himself
into an angel of light in us, and that we were all heretics. He
then</p>

</div><div id="613"> 

<p>read to me the articles I had confessed, and said it should
come before the lords, and that if I desired it, he would write
it differently. I replied, "You need not change anything."</p>

<p class="c8">Questions and answers between the inquisitor and
Claesken</p>

<p><i>Inquisitor.</i> "Why did you have yourself baptized?"
<i>Claesken.</i> "The Scriptures speak of anew life. John first
calls to repentance, Christ Himself also, and afterwards the
apostles; they taught the people to repent and reform, and then
to be baptized. Thus did I repent and reform, and was
baptized." Against this he did not say much.<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Why did you not have your children baptized?"<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "I cannot find in the Scriptures that this ought to
be."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "David says: 'I was shapen in iniquity, and in sin
did my mother conceive me.' Ps. 51:5. Since children are born
with original sin, they must be baptized, if they are to be
saved."<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "If a man can be saved by an external sign, then
Christ has died in vain."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "It is written, John 3:5, that we must be born
again, of water and of the Spirit; hence, children must be
baptized."<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "Christ does not say this to children, but to the
adult; therefore did I become regenerated. We know that the
children are in the hands of the Lord. The Lord said: -;Suffer
little children to come unto me; for of such is the kingdom of
heaven."' Matthew <i>19:14. Inq.</i> "The household of Stephanas
was baptized, which probably also included children." I Cor.
1:16. Cl."We do not depend on probabilities; we have the
certain assurance." He did not say much against this either.
<i>Ing.</i> "What do you think of the holy church?"<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "I think much of it."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Why then do you not go to church?"<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "I think nothing of your churchgoing." <i>Inq."Do</i>
you believe that God is Almighty?"<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "Yes, I believe this."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Do you then also believe that Christ consecrates
Himself, and is present in the bread? Paul says: 'The bread
which we break, is it not the communion of the body of Christ?
And the cup which we bless, is it not the communion of the
blood of Christ?"' I Cor. 10:16. Cl."I well know what Paul
says, and believe it, too."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> ."Christ said: 'Take, eat; this is my body;' and
Paul likewise." Matt. 26:26; I Cor. 11:24. Cl."I well know what
Christ and Paul say, and thus I believe." Ing."Do you believe
that Christ consecrates Himself, and is present in the
bread?"<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "Christ sitteth at the right hand of His Father; He
does not come under men's teeth."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "If you continue in this belief, you will have to go
into the abyss of hell forever. It is what all heretics say.
Jelis of Aix-la-Chapelle has deceived you; he himself has
renounced his belief, because he saw that he had erred." Cd."I
do not depend on Jelis, or any other man, but only on Christ;
He is our foundation, upon whom we have built ourselves, even
as Christ teaches us in His Gospel: 'Whosoever heareth my
words, and doeth them. I will liken him unto a wise man, who
built his house upon a rock; and though storms come, and beat
against the house, yet it will not fall.' Matt. 7:24. These now
are the storms that beat against our house; but Christ is our
stronghold, and He will preserve us."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "You do not understand it; there are many other
writings, of which you know nothing."<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "We need no other writings than the holy Gospel,
which Christ Himself, with His blessed mouth, has spoken to us,
and sealed with His blood; if we can observe that, we shall be
saved." <i>Inq."You</i> should suffer yourself to be
instructed; the holy fathers instituted churching* fifteen
hundred years ago."<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "The holy fathers did not have this holiness; these
are human commandments and institutions. Neither did the
apostles practice this holiness; I never read it."
<i>Ing.</i> "Are you wiser than the holy church?" C1."I do not
wish to do anything against the holy church; I have yielded
myself to the obedience 61 the holy church." <i>Inq."You</i>
should think: Do I know better than the holy fathers fifteen
hundred years ago? You should think that you are simple."<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "Though I am simple before men, I am not simple in
the knowledge of the Lord. Do you not know that the Lord
thanked His Father, that He had hid these things from the wise
and prudent, and had revealed them to the simple and unto
babes?" Matt. 11:25.</p>

<p>At one time there were also two monks with him, who were to
instruct me. They had but little to say, only that we were
people of corrupt minds, reprobate concerning the faith, ever
learning, and never able to come to the knowledge of the truth.
I Tim. 6:5; II Tim. 3:7, 8. I replied, "When the day of the Lord
will come, you will find it to be otherwise; take heed lest you
then be of those who will say: 'These are they whom we had in
derision; behold, how they are now numbered among the children
of God, and their lot is among the saints."' Wisd. 5:3, 5. Then
they said, "Behold, she judges us." I replied, "I do not judge
you; but I tell you to take heed unto yourselves. Now our life
is accounted madness, and our end to be without honor; but when
the day of the Lord comes, it will be found quite different."
The sum of the matter was, that I had a devil, and was
deceived. I said, "Is Christ then a deceiver?" He replied, "No;
Christ is no deceiver." I said, "Then I am not deceived; I
neither seek nor desire anything else than to fear the Lord
with all my heart, and (knowingly) not to transgress one tittle
of His commandments." After he had talked to me still further,
he said, "I can tell you nothing else; you may consider the matter."
I replied, "I need not consider it otherwise; I know full well
that I hold the truth."</p>

<p>When I came before him again, he said, "Claesken, to what
conclusion have you come?"<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "I have concluded to adhere to that to which the Lord
has called me." Matt. 20:1. Ing."The devil has</p>

<p>* Den Kerck-gang.</p>

</div><div id="614"> 

<p>called you, who transforms himself into an angel of light in
you people."</p>

<p>When he examined me the sixth time, he asked me, "When Christ
held His supper with His apostles, did He not give them His
flesh to eat, and His blood to drink."<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "He gave them bread and wine, and He gave them His
body for redemption."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Christ certainly clearly says: 'Take, eat; this is
my flesh;' you certainly cannot contradict this."<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "Paul says: 'I have received of the Lord that which
also I delivered unto you, That the Lord Jesus, the same night
in which he was betrayed, took bread; and when he had given
thanks, he brake it, and gave it to his apostles, and said,
Take, eat; this is my body, which is broken for you; this do in
remembrance of me. After the same manner also he took the cup,
when he had supped, saying, This cup is the new testament in my
blood: this do ye, as oft as ye drink it, in remembrance of me.
For as often as ye eat this bread, and drink this cup, ye do
shew the Lord's death till he come.' I Cor. 11:23-26. Thus
Christ left us His supper, that we should remember His death by
it, that He gave His body and shed His blood for us. This
supper I want to hold with the people of God, and no
other."</p>

<p>He held to his twaddle: that we must eat Christ's flesh, and
drink. His blood, since these were clearly implied by the words
of Christ and of Paul.</p>

<p>Cl."Since the words are so plain, I can well understand
them; but it is as Paul says: that those who do not turn to the
Lord, have a vail before their hearts; but those who turn to
the Lord, from their hearts the vail is taken away. II Cor.
3:1416. We have turned to the Lord; nothing is hid to us."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "In the 6th chapter of John (verse 53) Christ also
clearly says that we must eat His flesh, and drink His
blood."<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "It is also written there: 'Then the Jews murmured,
and said: How can this man give us his flesh to eat? Then
Christ said: Except ye eat the flesh of the Son of man, ye have
no life in you.' Again, He says: 'Whoso eateth my flesh, and
drinketh my blood, hath eternal life:' He also said: 'Flesh and
blood profit nothing: the words that I speak unto you, they are
spirit, and they are life.' Those who believe in God, and walk
in all righteousness, they are temples of God, in whom God will
dwell and walk, as Paul testifies." II Cor. 6:16.</p>

<p>When, he examined me the seventh time, he said, "Do you not
believe that the apostles ate the flesh of Christ?"<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "Christ took the bread, gave thanks, brake it, and
gave it to His disciples, and His body He gave for their
redemption." <i>Ing.</i> "Do you not believe otherwise?"<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "I do not believe otherwise than Christ has
spoken."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Then I declare unto you, that I am clear of your
blood; your blood be upon your own head."<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "I am well satisfied with this."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Herewith I commit you to the lord."</p>

<p>He afterwards examined me once more, and asked me, "Do you
not vet believe that the apostles ate the flesh of Christ?"<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "I have told you."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Tell it now."<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "I will not tell it again."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Do you still persist in your views respecting
baptism?"<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "You certainly well know that the penitent ought to
be baptized."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "This is true enough, if for instance a Jew comes,
who is not baptized yet. Are you still of the same opinion in
regard to infant baptism?"<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "Yes."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Do you not believe otherwise?"<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "I do not believe otherwise than Christ has
commanded."<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Then I declare unto you, that you will be tormented
forever in the abyss of hell."<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "How dare you judge me so awfully, seeing judgment
belongs to the Lord alone? Acts 17:31. I am not terrified by
this; I know better; when the day of the Lord comes, it will be
found different."</p>

<p>I then asked him, "What does my husband say?"<br />
<i>Inq.</i> "Your husband also still persists in his views; may
the Lord enlighten you."<br />
<i>Cl.</i> "We are already enlightened, the Lord be
praised."</p>

<p>Concerning my baptism he did not say much, nor about infant
baptism; but the whole of his talk was that we must eat the
flesh of Christ, and drink His blood, and that this had been
instituted fifteen hundred years ago, and that I was simple and
had hardly once read the Testament through. I said, "Do you think that we, run on uncertainties? We are not
ignorant of the contents of the New Testament. We forsake out
dear children, whom I would not forsake for the whole world,
and we stake upon it all that we have-should we run on
uncertainties yet? We seek nothing but our salvation; you
certainly cannot prove to us by the Scriptures, that we
practice and believe one tittle against the Word of the Lord."
But he only said that we had all from the devil, and that we
were possessed of the devil of pride. I said, "We know that the
proud are cast down from their seats." Luke 1:52. He talked so
long, that he sometimes already fancied that I would heed him;
hence I had to speak now and then, because I did not want him
to think this; I could not bear to hear him speak so awfully
against the truth.</p>

<h2>A letter by Claesken to her friends according to
the</h2> 

<h2>flesh, and also according to the spirit, written
in</h2> 

<h2>prison, the 14th of March, A. D. 1559, at</h2> 

<h2>which time, or thereabouts, she, her dear</h2> 

<h2>husband, and her brother Jacques, were</h2> 

<h2>put to death for the testimony of Jesus</h2> 

<p>The Lord, through His great grace and mercy, grant that all
those who hunger and thirst after righteousness may be
filled.</p>

<p>My dearly beloved friends, N., my heartfelt prayer and
request of you is once more, that you will peruse and search
the holy Scriptures, and learn to fear the Lord from the heart;
for"the fear of the Lord is the beginning of wisdom." Prov.
<i>9:10.</i> "Wisdom crieth without; she uttereth her voice in
the streets; she crieth in the chief place of concourse, in the
openings of the gates: in the city she uttereth her words,
saying, How long, ye sim-</p>

</div><div id="615"> 

<p>ple ones, will ye love simplicity? and the scorners delight
in their scorning, and fools hate knowledge? Turn you at my
reproof: behold, I will pour out my spirit unto you, I will
make known my words unto you. Because I have called, and ye
refused: I have stretched out my hand, and no man regarded; but
ye have set at nought all my counsel and would none of my
reproof: I also will laugh at your calamity; I will mock when
your fear cometh; when your fear cometh as desolation, and your
destruction cometh as a whirlwind; when distress and anguish
cometh upon you. Then shall they call upon me, but I will not
answer; they. shall seek me early, but they shall not find me;
for that they hated knowledge, and did not choose the fear of
the Lord: they would none of my counsel: they despised all my
reproof. Therefore shall they eat of the fruit of their own way
and be filled with their own devices . . . but whoso hearkeneth
unto me shall dwell safely, and shall be quiet from fear of
evil." Prov. 1:20-31, 33; Isaiah 65:12; Ps. 2:4; Job 27:6.</p>

<p>Behold, my dear friends, lay this to heart, that the Lord
will not hear those who do not fear Him now (John 9:31); and
how precious the fear of the Lord is to him that will choose
it; for nothing is to be compared to her. The fear of the Lord
is honor, and glory, and gladness, and a crown of rejoicing.
The fear of the Lord maketh a merry heart, and giveth joy, and
gladness and a long life. Whoso feareth the Lord, it shall go
well with him at the last, and he shall find favor in the day
of his death. The love of God is honorable. Those to whom
wisdom showeth her face, love her through seeing her, and in
the knowledge of her benefits. The fear of God is the beginning
of wisdom; and the fear of the Lord is true religion. The
knowledge of religion shall keep the heart, and justify it; it
shall give joy and gladness. The God-fearing shall prosper in
the day of life, and at his end he shall be blessed. To fear
the Lord is fullness of wisdom. The fear of God is a crown of
wisdom, making peace and perfect health to flourish. The root
of wisdom is to fear the Lord: but unto the sinner wisdom is a
curse. The fear of the Lord driveth out sin; for he that is
without fear cannot be justified. Sir. 1:11. Be not faithless;
for into a malicious soul wisdom shall not enter, nor dwell in
the body that is subject unto sin. John 20:27; Wisd. 1:4.</p>

<p>My beloved friends, lay it to heart, how great a difference
there is between those who fear the Lord, and them that do not
fear Him. Mal. 3:18. Search well the Scriptures, that you will
not be like the cities concerning which Christ says in the
Gospel, that because they did not lay to heart His mighty
works, which were done in their presence, it should be more
tolerable for those of Sodom and Gomorrah at the day of
judgment, than for them. Matthew 11:20. Therefore dear friends,
the Lord does yet even now show such mighty works through us
before your eyes; let it strengthen you, as Paul says that many of the brethren waxed confident in
the Lord by his bonds, and were much more bold to speak the
word without fear. Phil. 1:14. My dear friends, consider well,:
when the Lord did his mighty works, he did not do them for the
sake of a single individual, as we read in John, when He raised
Lazarus from the dead (John 11:42), but that the people should
see His mighty deeds, and believe in Him, though only some
believed in Him, and some were offended at Him, and said:
'Could not this man, which opened the eyes of the blind, have
caused that even this man should not have died?' Thus it is
also at the present day with those who do not believe; for
though they well see how strong and mighty the Lord is with us,
yet they are offended at it, and say that we do this from
stubbornness. And when we say that the righteous must suffer
persecution, they say that we. are persecuted for anabaptism.
Thus it is to them a cause of offense; but those who believe
God well know that we must suffer for righteousness' sake;
these, I hope, it will strengthen, and to us, be a trial unto.
our eternal salvation, through the grace of God. I Pet. 2:6, 8;
Matthew 5:10.</p>

<p>My dear friends, lay to heart how great glory is promised to
those who fear the Lord with the whole heart, and what great
anguish' shall come upon every soul of man that has not obeyed
the Gospel; these shall be punished with everlasting
destruction from the presence of the Lord. II Thessalonians
1:8, 9. Therefore become obedient to the truth, and be
transformed in your mind, that you may prove what is that
acceptable and perfect will of God. I Pet. 1:22; Rom. 12:2.
Meditate day and night in the law of the Lord, and do not
suffer yourselves to be prevented from praying without ceasing,
as the Scriptures teach us in many places; he that asketh
receiveth: to him that knocketh' it shall be opened. Ps. 1:2; I
Thess. 5:17; Matt. 7, 8. Hence, my dear friends, have your
hearts transformed, and the Lord will give you even before you
ask Him; for blessed are those who are of a good will. Luke
2:14. 'Blessed are they which do hunger and thirst after
righteousness: for they shall be filled."' Matt. 5:6.</p>

<p>Therefore desire with a sorrowful heart for the Lord, and
say, "Shew me thy ways, O Lord; teach me thy paths. Lead me in
thy truth, and teach me; for thou art the God of my salvation;
on thee do I wait all the day. Remember, O Lord, thy tender
mercies and thy lovingkindnesses; for they have been ever of
old. Remember not the sins of my youth, nor my transgressions:
according to thy mercy remember thou me for thy goodness' sake.
Good and upright is the Lord: therefore will he teach sinners
in the way. The meek will he guide in judgment: and the meek
will he teach his way." Ps. 25:4-9. Therefore, my dear friends,
repent sincerely, and confess your sins before the Lord with
all your heart; the Lord is found of them that are of a broken
heart and a contrite spirit. Is.</p>

</div><div id="616"> 

<p>66:2. Humble yourselves therefore under the mighty hand of
God, that you may be exalted in eternity. I Pet. 5:6. Herewith
I commend you to the Lord; may He guide you into all truth.</p>

<p>My dearly beloved friends, lay it to heart, for it is done
out of sincere, ardent love, which I have for your souls,
because I am certain and assured, that there is no other way by
which we can be saved; hence I warn you out of a pure heart,
and it will never be found otherwise. Therefore, though, some
have much to talk or say, they do this because they do not want
to take upon them the cross of Christ; and be persecuted for
it, as Paul says (Gal. 6:12); but [let us] take for an example,
that we are to follow Christ's steps, and that all the
Scriptures constrain us, to submit ourselves to and prepare for
suffering, even as also Paul says, "If we suffer with him, we
shall also rejoice with him"; and as the sufferings of Christ
abound in us, so our consolation also aboundeth by Christ; and
we also read that all the holy men of God were tried by many
tribulations and sufferings (Judith 8:25), and how that they
would joyfully receive sufferings; yea, that they greatly
rejoiced that they were counted worthy to suffer for the name
of God; but those who do not truly love the Lord want to be
exempt from suffering, and love this temporal life more than
their Lord and God, although Christ says, "Whosoever shall seek
to save his life shall lose it; but whosoever shall lose his
life for my sake and the gospel's, the same shall save it
forever." Mark 8:35. Not that we must all die for the Word of
the Lord; but the mind must be in such a state, that we would
rather die, than once knowingly and willingly transgress one of
the Lord's commandments; hence Christ says, "He that loveth aught more than me is not worthy of me."
Matt. 10:37.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dearest friends, whom I love with all my
heart, do not regard what men say, but look only to Christ
Jesus, how He went before us in tribulation and suffering. Love
the Lord your God with all your heart, and with all your power
and strength; yea, though the whole world should rise up
against and assail you, no one can harm you, if you have God
for your Father, and if you have true love to God and. His.
saints; for love can do all things (I Cor. 13:7); but where
there is no true love, there will soon be confusion, when
persecution and distress come (Matt. 13:21); but for him that
commits himself to the Lord, and is possessed of love, nothing
is difficult; had I not experienced this myself, it were
impossible for me to know that it is so easy. Hence Christ
says, "My yoke is easy, and my burden is light." Matt. 11:30.
Yes, dear friends, thus I am still minded, and I so love my
Lord and God, that if I could save my life by a thought, and
would know that it did not please the Lord, I would rather die
than think such thought. Not that I am boasting; the Lord well
knows how vile I have shown myself before Him; but it is through the great grace and mercy and love shown us that we
are elected to His heavenly kingdom. Eph. 2:7. Now only do I
feel within me the inexpressible grace and mercy of God, and
His love, and how we therefore ought to love Him in return (I
John 4:19); yea, this grace and love are so great before my
eyes, that my sorrow is turned into joy.</p>

<p>I must further relate to you something of the sorrow which I
had before I was apprehended. Now I remember the words of the
apostle, that I have had godly sorrow, and that godly sorrow
worketh repentance to salvation. II Cor. 7:10. Yea, I had such
sorrow at times, that I did not know whither to turn, and
sometimes cried to the Lord with a loud voice saying, "O Lord,
crush my old heart, and give me a new heart and. mind, that I
may be found upright before thine eyes." Ezek. 36:26. I said to
my dear husband, "When I apply the. rule of the Scriptures to my
life, it seems to me as though I must perish." Well may I say
with David, "Mine iniquities are gone over mine head: as a heavy
burden they are too heavy for me." Ps. 38: 4. I said, "My dear
husband, pray the Lord for me; I am so harassed-the more I
direct my thoughts to the Lord, the more the tempter assails me
with other thoughts." I Pet. 5:8. Thus I cried to the Lord, and
said, "O Lord, thou surely knowest that I desire nothing but to
fear Thee." My husband would comfort me sometimes; it seemed to
him that I did nothing but what could stand in the sight of the
Lord. I said, "I have not my first love (Rev. 2:4); therefore I
grieve, so that I cannot sleep. There is no hope to die unto
sin, I apprehend to live a long time yet; though I strive never
so much to reform, yet I remain as vile as ever: 'O wretched
man that I am, whither shall I go?"' Rom. 7:24.</p>

<p>I should have written more to you, but the messenger came
and informed me that we were to go [die]. My dearly beloved
friends, such was the joyful sentence my husband, and I, and
our brother heard: we showed each other such love, and had such
.a glad heart. I thanked the Lord so greatly, that the lords
all heard it. They bade me keep silence, but I spoke
fearlessly. When we had heard our sentence, all three of us
spoke, and said that they had condemned righteous blood, and
other words. My dear husband spoke so friendly, and said so
often, with a glad countenance, that all the people beheld
it, "Yes, we thank the Lord!"</p>

<p>Herewith I commend you to the Lord. Hasten to come to us,
and that we may live with each other in eternity.</p>

<h2>Another letter or confession of Claesken</h2> 

<p>When we were before the full council, we were addressed by
the Procurator General of the council, who presented to the
lords a general statement of what we had confessed before the
commissary, and made a long speech, how long we had not been
to</p>

</div><div id="617"> 

<p>church, that we had not had our children baptized, and that
we were Anabaptists, and said that according to the decree we
had forfeited our lives, and that our property had lapsed into
the hands of the king. Thus he accused us before the lords, and
harangued us upon life and property, and when he had related
how and where we had received our baptism, he asked us whether
we would adhere to our baptism. We boldly and fearlessly said
with a glad heart, that we had received one baptism according
to the command of the Lord. Our brother Jacques said that if
the contrary could be proved to him with the Word of the Lord,
he did not want to act contrary to His Word.</p>

<p>My husband said that he would adhere to his baptism. And I
said, as our brother had said, that we had received one baptism
according to the Word of the Lord. Every time he said, "Just as
you think." He then asked us, whether we did not wish an
advocate. Our brother said, "The Lord is our Advocate." I John
2:1. With this we went away. We went from the council glad and
joyful, though it was to cost our lives. Acts 5:41.</p>

<p>Since that time, my husband and our brother appeared once
before the pastor of the Old Court, and on Sunday in Lent all
three of us were before the steward, our brother first; he had
a long conversation with him; and proved it to him with the
Scriptures, so that he could not say a word against it, except
that it was from the devil, since there were many in hell, and
that ours were the worst; thereupon my husband was brought
before him, and then I. When I appeared before him, he began to
speak of infant baptism, of my baptism, the necessity of eating
the flesh of Christ, and many other things. I said, "You need
not bring these matters up; it is not given me to dispute with
you. I tell you flatly, I will adhere to that wherein the Lord
has called me." He replied that the devil had called me. I
said, "Is it the nature of the devil now, to desist from evil,
and do good? It is with us as the prophet says: He that
departeth from evil maketh himself a prey. Isa. 59:15. Thus it
has gone with us; from the first day that we forsook our vain,
wicked life, we were hated of every one, as Christ says: 'Ye
shall be hated of all men for my name's sake."' Matt. 10:22. He
says, "Be not afraid of them that kill the body, and after that
have no more that they can do; but fear him which hath power to
cast soul and body into hell." Luke 12:4, 5; Isa. 51:7. Yes,
Him alone we fear. He insisted that I should express myself
with regard to infant baptism, and the eating of the flesh of
Christ. I said, "It is not worth-while far me to answer your
questions; they are so useless. I have told it to you enough; I
shall tell you no more; we have had enough of it." I said, "Wake
up, and give heed; you certainly see that it is not in human
power what the Lord enables us to do, that we can leave our
dear children, yea, joyfully resign our lives, for the honor of
God." I said, "Take heed what you do, we are God's holy people,
His chosen.</p>

<p>Though all your learned men in the whole world should agree,
they cannot prove to us with the Word of the Lord, that we
believe or act contrary to the Word." He said that we at least
did not believe that the apostles ate the flesh of Christ, and
drank His blood, and Christ says, "Take, eat, this is my body."
I said, "Christ took the bread, gave thanks, brake it, and gave
it to His apostles. When He took the bread, brake it, and gave
it to them, the bread was certainly no flesh; He surely did not
give them His living body to eat, when He stood alive among
them; but He gave His body for redemption, not for them alone,
but for all who should believe in Him." However, he was not to
be convinced, but held to his old tune.</p>

<p>Our brother had proved everything to him so clearly with the
Scriptures, that he could not say a single word against it. Our
brother spoke very loud in order that those who stood without
the chancery should hear how clearly he proved it to him. I
also spoke as loud as I could, with a glad heart; whatever the
Lord gave me to utter I spoke fearlessly; to relate all of
which would take too long. He constantly reiterated that we had
the devil in us, that the devil transformed himself into an
angel of light in us, that we were possessed of the devil of
pride, and that we must forever go into the abyss of hell. Thus
he did every time we were before him. I said, "As lightly as you
consign us to the abyss of hell, so highly are we exalted with
the Lord."</p>

<p>As regards infant baptism he knew nothing to say, except
Christ says, "You must be born again of water and of the
Spirit." John 3:5. I said, "Children cannot understand the new birth; Christ said this
to the adult; hence we have put off our old life, and put on a
new life. We well know that our children are saved before the
Lord." He then cited David, how he was born in sin. Ps. 51:7.
Our brother had explained it to him clearly, yet he remained as
ignorant as ever. When we had ended our conversation, I asked
him what my husband said. He replied, "Your husband also
persists in his views." I said, "What will you do with my poor
husband, who cannot read a word?" He replied, "Your damnation
will be greater than that of your husband; because you can
read, and have seduced him." With this I left him. Afterwards
Claesken, her husband, and brother Jacques were drowned, for
the testimony of the truth, at Leeuwarden, in Friesland, in
March, 1559.</p><br />

<h1>JELIS DE GROOT, AND MAHIEU VAN HALEWIJN, A. D. 1559</h1>

<p>At Kortrijck, in Flanders, there were two Godfearing and
simple brethren, one named Jelis de Groot, the other Mahieu van
Halewijn, who would much rather suffer affliction with the
people of God, than enjoy every vain pleasure with the wicked
world; which affliction they also could not escape; for in the
year 1559 they were apprehended, and immediately examined
concerning their faith,</p>

</div><div id="618"> 

<p>which they freely confessed, and adhered to unto the end,
notwithstanding the threats made against, and the torments
inflicted upon, them on this account, so that they were finally
sentenced to death for their steadfastness, and, as valiant
heroes of God, publicly, in the sight of many, passed through
temporal death, to await, with their fellow brethren, gone
before, under the altar, the day of their avenging. Rev.
6:9.</p>

<h2>KAREL VAN TIEGEM, A. D. 1559</h2> 

<p>About the same time there was also apprehended at Kortrijck,
for the love of God, and living according to His Word, a
brother named Karel van Tiegem, who was not ashamed freely to
confess Christ his Lord before men, and to make a good
confession of his faith, in which he also persevered unto the
end; but however greatly he was tormented, he would not
implicate others; hence the rulers of this world seizing
occasion against him, as Pilate, instigated by the priests to
remain Caesar's friend, did against Christ, condemned him to
death, and caused him to be burnt with fire; wherefore they
must expect the sentence of eternal fire, which shall have no
power over him.</p>

<h2>WOLFGANG MAIR, AND WOLFGANG HUEBER, IN THE YEAR 1559</h2> 

<p>In this year 1559, two brethren, named Wolfgang Mair and
Wolfgang Hueber, were apprehended for the faith, in the
district of Lutzenburg, and taken to Titmain, whence they were
brought to Saltzburg, in both of which places they had to
suffer and experience great torment and tyranny. Wolfgang Mair
was twice brought to the rack, stripped each time, and severely
tortured; but he could not be induced to say aught that was
contrary to his faith. The secretary said, "You must tell who
took you into his house or lodged you; or you will have to die
upon the rack." He replied, "If I die, I die; I will nevertheless not say aught against
my conscience, nor betray those that have done me good." Then
they left off torturing, and priests came to them with manifold
allurements, and labored long and much with them; they also
sought to turn them with many threats and entreaties, and
denied all hope to them, with many blasphemies, all of which
they earnestly contradicted, defending the truth with great
zeal, since the Lord gave them such strength, that they had
already surrendered their lives for the truth.</p>

<p>After this there was much consultation concerning them,
especially among the priests; once it was resolved to imprison
them for life; but God brought to nought this purpose.
Afterwards they were much tempted yet by one and the other, of
those who wanted to make them renounce their faith; but it was
in vain, they put them all to shame with the Word of God, and
freely declared to them, that their faith was the way of divine
truth in Jesus Christ, to which they would steadfastly adhere by the help of God, no matter what anybody
should say or undertake against it. Thereupon they were taken
back from Saltzburg to Titmain, to be sentenced to death. When
their sentence was read they vigorously contradicted it, saying
that it was not true, and that their faith was profitable unto
all things, and that it was neither heresy nor deception.</p>

<p>When they were led out of the city, some women wept for
compassion, that they were thus to be put to death on account
of the faith; but they said, "You need not weep on our account;
but weep for yourselves, and for your sins." They also sang for
joy that their end and redemption were so near at hand.</p>

<p>When they were at the place of execution, brother Wolfgang
Mair cried to the people, "Today I will offer unto my God a true
burnt sacrifice, pay my vows, and testify with my blood to the
divine truth." Thus they were executed with the sword, and then
burnt with fire, cheerfully, valiantly and boldly resigning
their temporal life, to inherit eternal life.</p>

<p>Some who were the principal cause of their imprisonment and
death were signally smitten by the judgment of God, so that
some of them died soon after, while others did not meet with a
natural death, but were so touched by God, that it was easy to
see that they were visited by the wrath of God.</p>

<h2>JAN JANS BRANT, A. D. 1559</h2> 

<p>In the year 1559, on the 9th of November, it happened that a
brother by the name of Jan Jans Brant, was apprehended for
following Christ and the Gospel, at Geervliet, in South
Holland. When he was examined by the learned, he steadfastly
adhered to his faith, and confessed' it freely, saying
further, "This is the true way to eternal life, which is found
by so few, and walked by a still smaller number; for it is too
narrow for them, and would cause their flesh too much pain." On
account of these and like words, they became embittered against
him more than against any malefactor, so that they would have
made away with him in a fortnight, had not his life, through
the intercession of certain persons, been spared a little
longer, so that in all, he lay in prison one month. Afterwards
they sentenced him to be drowned in a sack, for which he was
well prepared. The executioner tied him into a sack, and cast
them from the high Hofbrugh.* The sack bursting open, the
executioner struck him with a stick on his body, so that he
called from the water, "Oh, how you murder me!" Many were moved
to pity, that he had to die so miserably. Thus he offered up
his sacrifice, and rests now from his labor, and is awaiting
the glorious Sabbath spoken of in Isaiah, yea, the rest with
Christ in Paradise. Phil. 2:17; Rev. 14:13; Luke 23:42.</p>

<p>* Name of a bridge.</p>

</div><div id="619"> 

<h2>TRIJNKEN KEUTS, A. D. 1559</h2> 

<p>Trijnken Keuts was a widow who lived in the city of
Maestricht. Having come to the knowledge of the divine truth
through the holy Gospel, she in her simplicity laid the matter
to heart, and continued day and night in earnest prayer, until
the Lord further enlightened her with the clear, shining light
of His divine grace, and endowed her with power of faith, so
that she; believing and penitent, had herself baptized, upon
the true faith, in the name of Jesus Christ, a member of the
body and church of Jesus Christ; and as she lived according to
her faith and no longer resorted to the papal idolatries, but
abstained from every abomination, and entered upon a new life,
the venomous beast could not endure this, and she was therefore
accused and reported as a heretic to the authorities of said
city. Thereupon the burgomasters cited her to appear in the
Landtskroon (the house in which the burgomasters and the
council hold their court). When she received this summons,
through a servant of the burgomasters, she went to- the
Landtskroon. Arriving there, she was asked and examined by the
burgomasters, in regard to what had been reported to them, as
to whether it was so with her; and when she frankly answered
them, and confessed the truth, they imprisoned her there.
Having been confined for a time, in the meanwhile undergoing
many importunities and conflicts, she was finally caused to be
rigorously examined by the priests (one of whom was a Dominican
monk), before whom she freely confessed her faith. When asked
whether she was rebaptized, she replied, "I was baptized upon my faith according to the doctrine of
Christ;" in regard to which they had yet many more words
together; but she adhered to the truth. The priests also
questioned her concerning the sacrament, whether she did not
believe that when the priest had pronounced five words over the
bread, Christ was present in it, essentially with flesh and
blood, just as He had hung on the cross. Trijne said that she
believed that Christ had ascended to heaven, and was sitting on
the right hand of God, His heavenly Father. And she asked,
saying, "How should He come into the bread?"</p>

<p>When she thus steadfastly adhered to the truth, these
priests condemned her to be burnt to ashes here, and to burn
forever in hell. Trijne said, "When you, in a few days, will
follow me before the judgment seat of God; you will find it to
be otherwise." Upon this judgment, Trijne was delivered to the
bailiff and the judges, by whom she was sentenced, that she
should be led forth, according to the imperial mandate; and be
burnt to ashes; which Trijne gratefully received, willingly
submitting to it. She was therefore, with her mouth gagged, led
to the Vrijthof, where she put off her tabernacle, and was
burnt to ashes, having commended her soul into the hands of
God. I Pet. 1:14. This occurred in the year 1559, on Palm Eve,
in Lent.</p>

<p>It was currently reported as true, that one of the
afore-mentioned priests, namely, the Dominican monk, three days
after Trijnken was offered up and burnt, was unexpectedly (he
not having been known to be sick), and secretly found dead in
his cell, and that he was being eaten up by lice; but what part
God had in this matter, this we leave to His righteous
judgment, who will give to everyone his merited reward.</p>

<h2>FRANSKEN VROEVROUWE, NAENTGEN LEERVER KOOPSTER AND PLEUNTGEN VAN DER GOES, A. D. 1559</h2> 

<p>There were also at Antwerp three sisters, namely, Fransken
Vroevrouwe, Naentgen Leerverkoopster, and Pleuntgen van der
Goes, who were kindled with the love of God, and, as lambs and
sheep of Christ, heard and followed the voice of their
Shepherd, so that, having been apprehended on this account in
the year 1559, they steadfastly adhered to the truth amidst all
solicitations, tortures and sufferings; hence all of them
finally died for the name of -Christ, being drowned in a vat,
in the prison.</p>

<p>But those who condemned them to death, must therefore expect
from the Lord the severe judgment that shall come upon them on
this account. Matt. 7:2.</p>

<h2>BETGEN, NEELKEN, AND MARIKEN FRANSS, IN THE YEAR 1559</h2> 

<p>In this year also three other sisters, namely, Betgen,
Neelken, and Mariken Franss, were apprehended at Antwerp, for
living according to their faith in God, and as they, with a
firm confidence, as those that were born of God, steadfastly
contended for the accepted. truth, they were finally sentenced
to death and drowned. Thus they had to press their way through
the strait gate, this temporal death, in order to enter in, and
inherit, together with all the valiant witnesses of God, His
eternal and imperishable kingdom.</p>

<h2>ADRIAEN PAN AND HIS WIFE, A. D. 1559</h2> 

<p>In the year 1559, also Adriaen Pan, the faithful friend of
Christ, and his wife, were in the claws of the wolves, at
Antwerp, in Brabant, where they, through the grace of God,
endured severe imprisonment and cruel examinations; but through
true faith and living hope they were so firmly united to their
Captain, Christ Jesus, that they could by no means be brought
to apostatize. Hence they were condemned to death by the rulers
of darkness, who knew not the light of truth; and thus Adriaen
Pan was most miserably put to death with the sword, his wife,
who was pregnant, bearing it all for Christ's sake, however
much it pained her. After she had given birth to her child, she
was drowned, suffering it with great steadfastness. And thus
they entered into eternal rest with the Lord.</p>

</div><div id="620"> 

<h2>A letter by Adriaen Pan, written in prison,
in the year 1559</h2> 

<p>Grace and peace from God our heavenly Father, through the
merits of Jesus Christ His beloved Son, with the true
illumination of the Holy Ghost, we wish all lovers of the
eternal truth. Amen.</p>

<p>My dearly beloved and longed-for brethren, whom we love from
the bottom of our hearts, and bear in our hearts, as those with
whom we are one soul and one body, though we are now apparently
deprived of you, you are nevertheless the more in our hearts,
and we entreat you, that no one will faint at our tribulations
to which we are now subjected; for we hope that you will be
rejoiced to hear it since we know for certain, that it is for
the truth. II John 1:1; Acts 4:32; Eph. 3:13; I Thess. 3:3.</p>

<p>Peter says, "Let none of you suffer as an evildoer, or as a
thief; but if you suffer as a Christian, happy are you; for the
glory and Spirit of God rest upon you; but on their part he is
evil spoken of." Paul says that the sufferings of this present
time are not worthy to be compared with the glory which shall
be revealed in us; yea, that eye hath not seen, neither have
entered into the heart of man, the things which God hath
prepared for them that love Him. As the sufferings of Christ
abound in us, so our consolation also aboundeth by Christ. My
dear brethren, how should we not be of good courage, when we
hear such comforting words! My dear friends, the more
tribulation there is to try us, the more we are comforted. This
we experienced at the start, when we were apprehended, when
they assailed the house, as though they meant to destroy it
with all that was in it. Then was my heart strengthened, ,as
though I was a different person. True, my wife was somewhat
distressed before they laid hands on us; but when she saw that
it had to be, fear left her, as a garment put off, and she
began to sing.</p>

<p class="c3">"Dus weest bedacht, ende op hem wacht;</p>

<p class="c3">Want by sal komen als een dief in der
nacht."*</p>

<p>For we had not expected them yet, and had packed our things,
intending to depart soon; but the Lord ordered it otherwise,
praised be He forever. As they were busily engaged in
plundering, I would fain have sung: <i>Noyt meerder vreught in
my en was, dan nu is in desen tiiden.t</i> But I restrained
myself from singing, because I thought that many more trials
were awaiting me yet; but the Lord be praised, who does not
suffer us to be ashamed. Ps. 25:3. They began to upbraid us
much concerning Munster and Amsterdam; but I told them that I
was innocent in.the matter, and that it was for the truth that
we suffered. I also said, "I am not yet thirty-three years old;
how then could I have.been there?" Some railed, others</p>

<p>* Take heed therefore and watch for Him; for He shall come
as a thief in the night.</p>

<p>** I never had greater joy than at this present time.</p>

<p>lamented: but I said, "Weep not for us, but weep for
yourselves,. and for your children." Methinks, we could well
have said with David, "Though I were compassed about by ten
thousands of people, who should come upon me, I should not fear
them; yea, they have compassed me about; they compass me about
like bees, but in the name of the Lord I will destroy them."
Psalm 3:6; 118:12.</p>

<p>My dear brethren, we.do not say this to boast but for joy,
and to thank God for the great power and strength which He
grants us; and for the joy of all lovers for the truth, who may
hear this. Pray for us that we may continue steadfast unto the
end. We beg you to receive our few lines in good part. The 15th
day of our imprisonment, and the 9th of May. My wife and I
salute you much, and all with whom we are acquainted, or who
may inquire after us.</p>

<h2>Another letter by Adriaen Pan, written after
he was sentenced</h2> 

<p>Grace and peace from God our heavenly Father, through the
merits of Jesus Christ, with the true illumination of the Holy
Ghost, we wish all lovers of the eternal truth. Amen.</p>

<p>My dear N., I still remember you at the end of my life, and
pray Almighty God to comfort you with His Spirit, and instruct
you with all spiritual wisdom and understanding that may
conduce to your salvation. Col. 1:9. I further inform you, that
I was on the rack the 2d of June, and on the 16th day I was
brought into court, where they asked me whether I was baptized,
or rebaptized. I asked whether I was permitted to speak. They
consented. I said that I believed all that was written in the
law and in the prophets, and would live and die by what Jesus
Christ and His apostles taught and commanded; and that I was
baptized upon acknowledgement of my sins, that I was sorry for
them, and upon confession of my faith, in the name of the
Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost. Thereupon they sentenced
me; hence I expect nothing else than that they will do their
will with the body; may the Lord receive the spirit. I am quite
ready to live and die for the name of the Lord. I cannot
sufficiently praise and thank God, that He has called me to
suffer for His name. O my dear N., I am, of good cheer; the
Lord, I trust, will give me strength unto the end. I cannot say
that I ever had a happier day in prison, than when I was
apprehended, and when I was sentenced. My dear N., be of good
cheer; it will soon be over here; and let us not fear them that
kill the body; but Christ tells us whom we shall fear. I and my
wife salute you most affectionately with the peace of the Lord.
Receive my brief letter in good part; I would fain have written
you more, but I am not much gifted for it; however, I thank the
Lord for all that He has given me.</p>

<p>Greet the dear friends much, with whom we are acquainted, or
who inquire after us. Farewell!</p>

<p>Written by me,</p>

<p>ADRIAEN PAN.<br />
<i>Page 620</i></p>

<h2>HANS DE VETTE, AND ELEVEN OTHERS, PUT TO DEATH FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, AT GHENT, IN FLANDERS, A. D. 1559</h2> 

<p class="c25">A confession written by Hans de Vette, at
Ghent, where he was imprisoned with eleven others,
in the year 1559, touching his examination</p>

<p>On the first Friday after Whitsuntide there were imprisoned
at Ghent for the Word of the Lord, the following named persons:
Pieter Coerten of Meenen, Kaerle Tanckreet of Nipkerck, with
Proentken, his wife, of Belle, Jacob Spillebout, Abraham
Tanckreet, and Maeyken Floris of Nipkerck, An,honis van Cassel,
Hans de Smit, Marcus his brother, Hans de Vette, with Maritgen,
his wife, of Waesten, and Tanneken, the wife of J. de S. These
had been delivered by treachery to the Procurator General, who,
with three thief-catchers, took them away prisoners from their
lodging place, in the evening.</p>

<p>The next day we were visited by the authorities, who asked
us, each separately, for our names, and where we came from,
which we told them. They then asked us whether we confessed
another baptism.than infant baptism, and whether we had also
received another. We all renounced idolatrous infant baptism,
and confessed that we had received Christian baptism, except
Marcus de Smit, who confessed that he had not yet received it,
but that if he had opportunity, he wished to receive it with
all his heart. They then asked us whether we desired learned
men to instruct us; that they would send us some, and just such
as we wanted, ecclesiastics or secular men; they also said that
they should not hurry us. But since they almost always asked us
separately the same questions, I, the writer of this, said that
by the grace of the Lord I wanted no other instruction than I
had received, though an angel should come from heaven. Gal.
1:8.</p>

<p>Besides this, they nevertheless, about eight days
afterwards, sent one Friar Peter de Backer (who had partly
spied us out), with one of his companions,-two false prophets,
called jacobines, as I believe. After we had appeared before
them, and exchanged a few words, we came to infant baptism,
which he declared to be a divinely instituted doctrine, saying
that circumcision was a figure of it; also, that the apostles
had baptized entire households, and that Christ had commanded
it, John 3. But when I had proved to him, that he had not
spoken the truth, and that the apostles had baptized none
without faith, as is clearly found in the Acts of the Apostles,
he endeavored to speak about another article, saying that we
should not be able to agree. But I 'told him that I desired to
see the first finished before proceeding further, and begged
him to repent, proving to him, that their -worship was a rotten
and putrid idolatry, contrary to all the commandments of God, and a human plant; and that God's
commandments were sufficient for us, that no lies need be added
to them, and that it availed nothing to regard what God has not
commanded. Then he said that I was deceived, and had looked too
much at their abuses: that it was true there were some abuses
in their church, but that the principal of what was observed in
it, was good. After many words we parted.</p>

<p>A few days afterwards the Dean of Ronse, an inquisitor in
the country of Flanders, came, and with him, said Peter de
Backer, who had visited us first, and other false prophets.
When I appeared before them, the Dean asked my name. I replied
that my name was Hans de Vette. Then he asked me whether I was
married. I replied, "Yes." He then asked me whether my wife was
also of Waesten. I replied, "Yes." He asked me how long I had
been married. I said, "Not very long." He asked me, in what
church and by what parish priest I had been married. I asked
him whether we found anything said in the Scriptures, that a
parish priest was required for it. He said that in the world
whores and knfiLves come together without parish priests. Then
I said that I had done this according to the direction of the
Scriptures, as permitted by Paul, in order to avoid
fornication, it being better to marry than to burn (I Cor. 7:2,
<i>9); whores</i> and knaves on the contrary will much rather
burn than marry, as is abundantly seen and heard in this wicked
world in many thousands of instances. He then said that this
was a small matter, and that if I had done nothing more, it
could easily have been arranged; however, I should only tell
him where it took place. I told him that I did not intend to
tell him. Then he adjured me by the living God, that I should
tell him; but I made no reply. Thereupon he asked me why I had
not continued in the faith of the Roman church, and in her
worship. My reply was, that I had separated from her so as not
to become a partaker of her plagues, since darkness can have no
communion with light, nor Christ with Belial, nor the righteous
with the unrighteous, etc. Hence we must come out from among
her. Rev. 18:4; II Cor. 6:14, 17.</p>

<p>He then asked me what I thought of the seven sacraments,
part of which he named to me. I replied that I considered them
utterly worthless, because of all the abominable idolatry
observed by them; but since the Lord has commanded us to
confess His name before men, I said that I would confess my
faith to him. He said that I should. I then began to make my
confession; as that I believed in one God, the Creator of
heaven and earth, sea and waters, and all there is therein; and
who created man after His image. Him alone we must serve,
honor, worship, and love with all our soul, with all our
strength, and with all our thoughts, since He alone is good;
forsaking all idols, whether of gold, silver, stone, metal,
wood, bread, or of whatever other make or substance they may
be, even as they are rejected and</p>

</div><div id="622"> 

<p>prohibited in the holy Scriptures; for we know that an idol is
nothing in the world. I Cor. 8:4.</p>

<p>As I continued to speak, the Dean of Ronse said to me that I
was making it too long, to write it all down."You would make us
too much work," he said,"if you should thus confess your faith
from the beginning of the Bible.""I also believe," said
he,"what you have said here; but what do you say of the
sacrament of baptism as used in our church, to which everyone
must come, in order to be saved?" I replied that I considered
infant baptism worthless, since it was not commanded of God. He
said that circumcision was a figure of it, and that all the
children that were not circumcised in the Old Testament, or are
not baptized in the New Testament, must be damned. I then said,
in accordance with his own words, "Then the female children in
the Old Testament must all be damned." He became angry, and
said that what I advanced was only sophistry. I told him that
he should be ashamed to say that children were damned, to whom
as the Lord says, the kingdom of heaven belongs. He said that I
lied in this. And another priest told me that one of Paul's
disciples writes that he had learned infant baptism from his
teacher, Paul. Thereupon I said that Paul writes that we should
not be shaken in mind, neither by spirit nor by word, nor by
letter, as sent from them; or even though an angel from heaven
should come, and teach us anything different from what is
written in the holy Gospel, he should be accursed. II Thess.
2:2. I also asked him to show me where the Lord had commanded
to baptize children, or to prove that the apostles baptized
infants; which he could not do.</p>

<p>Again, he asked me how long ago I had been baptized. I
replied, "Not yet a year." He asked me where and by whom I had
been baptized; but I did not tell him. He then adjured me three
times by the living God, and by the baptism which I had
received, that I should tell him. I said that Caiaphas so
adjured Christ. He replied that Christ spoke. I said that
Christ spoke for Himself; but that when He was questioned
concerning His disciples, He did not speak.</p>

<p>He then a~ked me what I held concerning the sacrament of the
altar. I told him that I considered it nothing less than an
unclean, rotten, putrid idolatry, and an abomination before
God. He asked, "How? Do you not believe that He is present in it
in flesh and blood, just as He walked upon the earth, or as He
hung upon the tree of the cross?""Far be it from me," said
I,"that I should believe that Christ's flesh and blood are here
upon earth; for Christ Himself said to His apostles, that we
should always have the poor with us, but that we should not
always have Him." Matt. 26:11.</p>

<p>He thereupon told me that He was not thus present in the
sacrament, but that it was in spiritual substance, and that I
did not understand the matter; but that this argument had been
established many centuries before my time; for when Christ held His supper He said, He took the bread and gave it to
His disciples, and said, "Take, eat; this is my body." I replied
that the bread which Christ gave to His disciples, He gave them
as an emblem of His body which was to be broken for them; even
as He has represented Himself by figures in many places of
Scripture. In John (15:1) He says, "I am the true vine;" yet in
reality He was no vine, but He compared Himself to a vine. Thus
the bread which Christ brake for His disciples, was spiritually
a figure of His body; for He says in John 6;"Flesh and blood
profit nothing; but the words that I speak are spirit and
life." He said that this was irrelevant;"for if Christ were not
present," said he,"how could we eat damnation thereby?" But I
replied, "If it were the flesh and blood of Christ, we would not
eat damnation thereby: for Christ says Himself; 'Whoso eateth
my flesh, and drinketh my blood, hath eternal life.' John 6:54.
Hence these words must not be understood literally, but
spiritually, namely, that if one who was still a drunkard, or
covetous, or an idolater, or the like, should go to the Lord's
Supper with the church of Christ, whose head is Christ, such an
one would be unfit to break bread with the members of Christ,
not discerning Christ's body." I Cor.11:29. Then he said that
there were many among us, who were drunkards, adulterers, and
the like, and that they were well known to him. I then asked
him, "Who are they?" He said, "J. de R." I then asked him where he
lived. He replied, "I shall not tell you." I said that I well
knew if there were such in our church, and were known, they
would, according to the Scriptures, be put away and excluded. I
Cor. 5:11.</p>

<p>He then asked me, who had baptized me. And when he could not
learn it from me, he adjured me, but I did not tell him. Then
his secretary said, "I will wager you a pot of wine, that you will tell it
before a fortnight has passed;" but I would not bet. He then
asked me how often I had observed the Supper. I replied that I
had sometimes observed it, when opportunity offered itself,
with many dear brethren and sisters. He asked, "With whom? What
are their names?" I gave him the name of one of them, whom he
specially named in his question. He then inquired concerning
others, whether I regarded them as my brethren, or whether they
were only friends or novices;"for I have learned all this
Flemish," said he,"about novices [<i>encomelingen,</i> i. e.,
newcomers] friends and brethren." I said, "I thought you were
from Brabant; do you understand so much Flemish?""I hardly know
what I am," he said;"perhaps Z am a foundling.""Yes," said
I, "John's Revelation (13:1) speaks of a beast, which rose up
out of the sea; you may belong to that race."</p>

<p>He then asked me whether I did not believe that Jesus Christ
had assumed flesh and blood from Mary. I replied that I
believed that the Word which was in the beginning with God, and
by which the world was created, became flesh. Then he said</p>

</div><div id="623"> 

<p>that according to the flesh He was David's son. I
replied, "If He is David's son, Christ Himself says: 'How then
doth David call him Lord?"' He said that Christ only adduced
this to the Pharisees by way of argument; but Matthew, said he,
describes His generation from Abraham to Mary. I replied, that
Matthew traces the generation of Christ only to Joseph, the
husband of Mary of whom Christ was born; and Luke says that
Jesus was supposed to be the son of Joseph."But," said he,"do
you not believe that Mary is the mother of Christ?" I
said, "Yes; Christ says: 'Whosoever shall do the will of my
Father, the same is my mother, sister and brother."' Matt.
12:50.</p>

<p>He then said that Christ was of the seed of the woman. But I
told him, that women had no seed themselves; for as the woman
is of the man, even so is the man also by the woman. I Cor.
11:12. Then he said that He was of Mary's substance and blood.
But I replied that Christ said to the Jews, that He was from
above, but they from beneath;"ye are of this world," He said,"I
am not of this world." John 8:23. Moreover, the apostle
says, "The first man is of the earth, earthy: the second man is
the Lord from heaven." I Cor. 15:47. I then told them that they
should repent of their unrighteousness, persecution, and false,
idolatrous doctrine. They said, "We have the true doctrine." I
said that Paul nevertheless commands us to avoid such as
command to abstain from meats, which God has created for the
use of them that believe; and who forbid to marry, and have
their conscience seared with a hot iron; for it is better to
marry than to burn; but you people, contrary to the Scriptures,
command to abstain from meats, and forbid to marry, and will
rather burn than marry. I Tim. 4:2, 3; I Cor. 7:9.</p>

<p><i>Dean.</i> "We do not forbid to marry."</p>

<p><i>Hans.</i> "Certainly you do; you know that because of your
commandment a person may neither eat meat nor marry, in Lent,
and on many other days; and you have entered into a covenant
that restrains you from marrying; but you commit such
fornication that it is a shame to speak of it, as is daily seen
from the bastards that are brought to your houses, and Paul
says that we shall not cat with such, namely, fornicators,
drunkards, etc., but that they are to be delivered unto Satan,
for the destruction of their flesh." I Cor. 5:5.</p>

<p><i>Dean.</i> "We are not so bad; we do not want to deliver
them to Satan, we are so much the better."</p>

<p><i>Hans.</i> "Poor man, would you be better than Paul? But
all that is told you is of no avail; for you will not repent;
but if you want. to dispute with us in the market or any other
public place, we are ready, in hopes that some of the ignorant
might be drawn thereby."</p>

<p><i>Dean.</i> "This shall not be; who should judge there?
boatman, fish-mongers, and the like? That would be just the way
to excite a tumult; but we are fools that we dispute so much
with you; the proper way to do would be, simply to tell you our faith, and
if you will not believe it, pass sentence."</p>

<p>We had many other words yet as about the worshiping of
saints, the Pope of Rome, confession, fasting, purgatory, and
the sleeping of the saints, which it would take much too long
to write. The foregoing I have written down from memory, even
as they often occurred; but since it happened long ago, I
should not be able to write it down word for word. But since I
well know that it is of no avail to tell them anything, and
that they are arrogant and shameless. I sometimes give them
very brief answers, offering to dispute with them in public,
which they refused. They often put the same questions
repeatedly to our brethren and sisters that are in bonds with
us, who are all still of good cheer, the Lord be praised; for
we feared the false prophets much more before we spoke with
them, than afterwards. But the Lord knows how to give His
chosen a mouth in such hours as He has promised, better than we
can imagine; for those who seemed weak when not in bonds, are
,so courageous, that it is astonishing to see and hear it. The
Lord alone be praised forever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>The Dean also asked me whether we did not pray for him. I
said, "Yes," "What do you people call me?" said he, "Do you call
me Saul?" I replied, "I have sometimes heard you called the
Inquisitor (they all laughed); sometimes the Dean of Ronse." He
said, "That is my name." We had many more words yet; however
partly from lack of paper, I forbear writing more; but I beg
all who see this, to receive it in good part, and if possible,
let a copy of this be sent to our acquaintances at Antwerp, and
one to our acquaintances in the West.</p>

<p>Thereupon these twelve friends (whose names are mentioned in
the beginning of Hans de Vette's letter) all courageously laid
down their lives for the truth. First four valiantly passed
through the conflict, who offered up their burnt sacrifice in
the name of our Lord Jesus Christ, and a short time afterwards,
six others, who, after steadfast confession of their faith,
were also brought forth, and being asked whether they would not
yet recant, they answered, "No," but if they had committed any
crime, they should be dealt with accordingly. They were
speedily sentenced to death as heretics, and when they were
taken out to death in two wagons, two monks sat beside them,
who prevented them from speaking much, so that they could only
with great difficulty speak a word or two, namely," 'Fear not
them that kill the body; for after that they have no more that
they can do.' but, O men repent, for the apostle says that he
that lives after the flesh shall die." Rom. 8:13.</p>

<p>When they were led into a but of wood and straw in which
they were to be burnt, they manifested great joy, and
commending their souls into the hands of God, they put off the
corruptible, to put on the incorruptible.</p>

<p>There remained yet two pregnant women, who, after giving
birth to their children, and lying in,</p>

</div><div id="624"> 

<p>were both secretly beheaded in the count's castle. Thus all
these, continuing steadfast.unto the end, went to rest with the
Lord and shall also enter into eternal joy with Him, in the
company of all the dear children of God. Matt. 25:21; John
1:12.</p>

<h2>MAEYKEN KATS, OF WERVICK IN FLANDERS, MAGDALEENTKEN, AECHTKEN.OF ZIERICKZEE, OLD MAEYKEN, GRIETGEN BONAVENTUERS, AND MAEYKEN DE KORTE, A. D. 1559</h2> 

<p>On the 20th of May, 1559, the Margrave of Antwerp, seeking
one upon whose head a price of three hundred guilders was set,
went forth with many servants, and surrounded and entered two
houses, in which they found six sisters, namely, Maeyken Kats,
Magdaleentken, Aechtken of Zierickzee, Old Maeyken, Grietgen
Bonaventuers, and Maeyken de Korte. But however much they
searched the houses they could not find the one whom they
sought. Then the Margrave wished these women in Hoboken Heath.
But nevertheless, when he could not accomplish his purpose, he
took all six with him, and shut them in a dark prison.
Afterwards they were examined. They freely confessed their
faith, and could not be brought to recant, neither by the
imperial decree, nor by threats or torture; nor did they betray
any one. Hence, on the 8th of June; the first three were
sentenced to death, and drowned in prison by night.</p>

<p>Afterwards, on the llth of October, the other three were
also condemned to death; old Maeyken, the honorable widow, who
was worthy of double honor, was drowned, while Grietken
Bonaventuers and Maeyken de Korte had to taste death by the
sword (unusual with women) for the truth, for which their Lord,
whom they loved and did not forget, will likewise not forget
them, but gladly receive them into His kingdom and joyfully
feast in paradise.</p>

<h2>A LETTER FROM MAEYKEN DE KORTE</h2> 

<p>My dear sister, pray for us, that the word of the Lord may
have free course, and be fruitful in all longsuffering and
holiness, to wait for Him with patience; for He shall come
quickly, and bring His reward with Him; He is faithful that
promised, who also will do it. II Thess. 3:1; Rev. 22:12; I
Thess. 5:25. It is as I say, "Our life is a continual conflict
upon earth." Know that I am of tolerably good cheer; the flesh
is pretty well, the Lord be praised. We are here indeed as the
filth of the world, and constantly long to get home, and for a
building not made with hands; eternal in the heavens. We,
according to His promise, look for new heavens and a new earth,
wherein dwelleth righteousness. I Cor. 4:13. How ought we to be
prepared with a godly life I I often find myself cast down: I
also discover so many shortcomings in me, and that there is so
much yet to die unto; I have to commit it all to the Lord, with
an humble heart, and trembling, contrite spirit, asking Him for grace, and not
for justice. I feel that the more I humble myself, the more the
mighty God works in me, and pours His grace into me. Then I cry
most bitterly, fall upon my knees, and thank my God, and
say, "O my Lord and God, what am I, child of Adam, that Thou art
mindful of him,* Thou hast given him dominion over all Thy
works. Whence is it that Thou dost visit us so abundantly, and
dost so graciously open unto us Thy treasures, and causest the
bright morning star to arise and shine in our hearts, and hast
drawn us out of this dark night to the imperishable light?"
What shall we render unto Him, my dear sister, but a penitent
and contrite heart, and a broken spirit, with love and great
gratitude, there rests the spirit of the Lord, says David. Let
us love one another fervently, for God is love, and constantly
exhort each other, lest we wax cold through the deceitfulness
of sin; so that God may be glorified in us, and we may be
delivered from pride, and from unreasonable and wicked men; for
all men have not faith. The Lord is faithful; He will
strengthen and keep us. I John 4:8; Heb. 3:13; II Thess. 3:2.
Know, that my sisters were here, and desired to have a word of
comfort from me. The Lord gained the victory. I do not know how
it is with me, I do not feel drawn to them, just as though they
were not related to me; I cannot rejoice, though I see them,
and it seems to me that they are afraid of me. They caused me
so much cross. They had sent a monk named Balten here, to
examine me, and were willing to give him three caps, if he
should be able to convert me. He came with fine words, but I
would not speak, being sick at the time. Then my sisters
said, "Why do you not speak?" I replied, "I have no desire at
present; we have talked with him so often; he well knows our
intention."</p>

<p>This irritated Balten, and he complained greatly of me, that
I had strongly resisted the Scriptures, that I maintained
salvation erroneously, and that I had no hope. Then they wept
greatly, but it was all the same to me, whether he kept silence
or spoke. He made all leave the room, only my two sisters; he
and I remaining. He then entreated me much, saying, "My dear
Maeyken, have compassion upon your poor soul." I boldly
replied, "This I hope to do.""Say that you are sorry, and that
you have erred; it is sufficient, and you need say no more; an
instrument shall immediately be drawn up for you, according to
my direction, and I myself and your two brothers-in-law, will
sign it. It shall remain a secret, and all shall be done for
you that is possible; give your consent to it, my dear sister."
Then I was moved in my spirit, and said, "You may give your head
rest, yours is all lost labor; I am not at all inclined to say
that I am sorry. I am so sorry for it, that if I had not done
it, I should yet do what I have in mind. I want to abide in
it</p>

<p>* An implied substitution of gender, peculiar to the genius
of the Dutch (as also, the German) language; the exclaimant,
losing sight of her own individuality, views herself only as a
representative of Adam's race, and recipient of God's
munificence.-Trans.</p>

</div><div id="625"> 

<p>by the help of God, neither entreaties, nor tortures, nor
death, nor life shall turn me, and I want to die therein; hence
do not torment me." Phil. 4:13. I wish I could speak with
Lauwerens Huysmaeker, and see all of you; but I must be
patient.</p>

<p>I commend you to the Lord, and to the Word of His grace;
greet Andries, and Mattheus. I greet you both; greet Lauwerens,
and Hans; greet Adriaen much, and Lauwerens' wife, and the wife
of Lauwerens the broom-maker, and Hansken's wife.</p><br />

<h1>A TESTAMENT WRITTEN BY JELIS BERNAERTS TO HIS WIFE, WHEN HE LAY IN PRISON AT ANTWERP, WHERE HE WAS PUT TO DEATH FOR THE WORD OF THE LORD, A. D. 1559</h1>

<p>Grace and peace be multiplied unto you, my dear and most
beloved wife and sister in the Lord, according as His divine
power bath given unto us all things that pertain unto life and
godliness, through the knowledge of Him that hath called us to
glory and virtue: whereby are given unto us exceeding great and
precious promises. II Pet. 1:2, 3.</p>

<p>Thus, my most beloved, that by these you are a partaker of
the divine nature, if you flee the corruptible lusts of this
world, as you have also done, and by renouncing the same, and
accepting regeneration, faith, and manifestation of obedience,
which you proved by baptism, in which you put on Christ, and
thereby became a partaker of the divine nature. And this was
not done for works of righteousness which you did, but
according to His mercy He saved you, by the washing of
regeneration, and renewing of the Holy Ghost. Tit. 3:5. If you
continue herein unto the end, and are patient in whatever
befalls you, you shall inherit what is promised you. Praise
God, and thank Him for all His glorious benefits which you have
received; and bless God the Father through Jesus Christ, though
tribulation has now come upon you, through my departure for the
Lord's sake; and know that according to His abundant mercy He
bath begotten you again unto a lively hope by the resurrection
of Jesus Christ from the dead, to an inheritance incorruptible,
and undefiled, and that fadeth not away, reserved for you and
all that are in the same faith, who are kept by the power of
God through faith unto salvation ready to be revealed in the
last time, wherein you, my dear and beloved wife, greatly
rejoice, though now for a season, if need be, you are in
heaviness through manifold temptations: for, know, my most
beloved, we are tried in manifold ways, in order that it may
become manifest whether we truly love the Lord. I Pet. 1:3.</p>

<p>Hence be of good cheer, my most beloved, even though still
much more tribulation should come upon you; for know that we
must through much tribulation and suffering enter into the
kingdom of God. And as also Ecclesiasticus says, in the second
chapter, first verse, "My son, if thou come to serve the Lord,
prepare thy soul for temptation.</p>

<p>Set thy heart aright, and constantly endure, and make not
haste in time of trouble. Cleave unto him, and depart not away
. . . For gold is tried in the fire, and acceptable men in the
furnace of adversity."</p>

<p>But, my most beloved, even as James writes in his first
chapter, "My brethren, count it all joy when ye fall into divers
temptations, knowing this that the trying of your faith worketh
patience. But let patience have her perfect work, that ye may
be perfect and entire, wanting nothing;" for when we are in
tribulation, we need patience. Hence I entreat you from the
bottom of my heart, and from my inmost soul, to be of good
cheer, and with patience to let the trial of your faith become
manifest, as Peter says, that the trial of your faith, being
much more precious than of gold that perisheth, though it be
tried with fire, might be found unto praise and honor and glory
at the appearing of Jesus Christ: whom having not seen, ye
love; in whom, though now ye see him not, yet believing, ye
rejoice with joy unspeakable and full of glory: receiving the
end of your faith, even the salvation of your souls, I Pet.
1:7-9. Then all suffering, tribulation, reproach, persecution,
sighing, weeping, and lamenting will have an end. Rev. 21:4.
Therefore be of good cheer, and consider that the suffering
which may happen to us here, will all pass away, and all the
glory and pleasure of this world must also perish and come to
naught; but look constantly to the future glorious promises
that have been made us, and which shall be fulfilled to us that
believe, if we remain steadfast, since He is faithful that
promised, for the Lord is not slack concerning His promise.
Matt. 24:13; Heb. 10:23; II Peter 3:9. But be of good cheer,
and trust in Him, for He will not forsake you; and cast your
care upon Him, for He careth for you; for He that has called
and chosen you hereto is a God of all grace, as Paul says.</p>

<p>But the God of all grace, who bath called us unto His
eternal glory by Christ Jesus, after that ye have suffered a
[little] while, (mark, He says: A little while) make you
perfect, stablish, strengthen, settle you in that which you
have accepted, namely, the faith in Him, and His only begotten
Son, Jesus Christ our Lord, unto whom be praise, honor and
glory, now and forever. Amen. I Pet. 5:10.</p>

<p>After all heartfelt and affectionate greetings to you, my
dearest, chosen and most beloved wife and dear sister in the
Lord, I have received your letter, in which you write me to
write you a testament, which I will not refuse to do, if the
Lord gives me time; for if I could help you with my blood, I
would do it. But now I cannot help you, save by writing, which
I do to your comfort, out of true brotherly love, and from the
bottom of my heart, intending to finish this, by the help and
grace of the Lord, with the same mind with which I commenced
it. Know therefore, my dear wife and sister in the Lord, how
that God visited His people</p>

</div><div id="626"> 

<p>in former times, when they were in Egypt, in the bondage of
King Pharaoh, whom they had to 'serve for about five hundred
years. And when it was His will to deliver them, He raised up
Moses for, their leader, through whom God delivered them out of
Egypt's bondage and led them through the Red Sea, to which He
drowned and brought to naught King Pharaoh and all his
host-with which the latter pursued them.-thus delivering them
out of his hands. Thus they came into the wilderness, to go on
to the land which was promised them; and the Lord God, through
Moses their Leader, gave them laws and customs after which they
were to walk. But they did not continue in His law; wherefore
God became angry, and sware in His wrath, that they should not
enter into His rest. Concerning whom did He swear, but
concerning unbelievers? And we see that they did not enter
therein, and this because of their unbelief. This having thus
happened, the Lord spoke through the prophet, and said, "Behold,
the days come, saith the Lord, that I will make a new covenant
with the house of Israel, and with the house of Judah: not
according to the covenant that I made with their fathers, in
the day that I took them by the hand to bring them out of the
land of Egypt; which my covenant they brake, although I was a
husband unto them, saith the Lord: but this shall be the
covenant that I will make with the house of Israel; after those
days, saith the Lord, I will put my law in their inward parts,
and write it in their hearts; and will be their God, and they
shall be my people. And they shall teach no more every man his
neighbor, and every man his brother, saying, Know the Lord: for
they shall all know me, from the least of them unto the
greatest of them, saith the Lord: for I will forgive their
iniquity, and I will remember their sins no more." Now in these
last days He has revealed this covenant, given through His Son
Jesus Christ our Lord, who is the true Moses, who has taken us
by the hand. and led us out of Egypt, wherein we all sat and
served the hellish King Pharaoh, under whom we were captive by
sin; from which bonds and slavery we are redeemed through
Christ, who through His death and the shedding of His blood
redeemed and reconciled us, and delivered us from the hellish
King Pharaoh, whom He destroyed and suffocated in his blood,
thereby fulfilling the Old Testament; for all.had to be
fulfilled that was written in the law and in the prophets. Heb.
1:2; Matt. 5:17; Luke 24:44. Thus the fulfillment was
accomplished, and the new testament confirmed with His blood;
which, as already stated, He had promised through the prophets,
and which is proclaimed to us .through the Gospel, and
confirmed with signs and wonders by Him and His holy apostles,
whom after His resurrection He sent out to preach to all
nations, that whosoever should believe and be baptized, should
be saved, also commanding them to teach them to observe all
things whatsoever He had commanded them. Heb. 2:4; Matt.
28:20.</p>

<p>And now, my most beloved, are we the people which God chose
before the foundation of the world, and made a better testament
with us, than He made with Israel, who daily had to oiler up
sacrifice for sins, by which they could nevertheless not atone?
Eph. 1:4; Heb. 7:22, 27. For burnt offerings and offering for
sin He would not, neither did God have pleasure therein, which
were offered by the law; then said He (namely Christ),"Lo, I
come to do thy will, O God." He taketh away the former, that He
may establish the second. By the which will we are sanctified
through the offering of the body of Jesus Christ once for all.
And every priest then stood daily ministering and offering
oftentimes the same sacrifices, which can never take away sins:
but this man, after He had offered one sacrifice for sins
forever, sat down on the right hand of God; from henceforth
expecting till His enemies be made His footstool. For by one
offering He hath perfected forever them that are sanctified.
Whereof the Holy Ghost also is a witness to us</p>

<p>for after that He had said before (as is written Jer.
31:31). This is the covenant that I will make with them after
those days, saith the Lord; I will put my laws into their
hearts, and in their minds Will I write them; and their sins
and iniquities will I remember no more. Now where remission of
these is, there is no more offering for sin, as Paul writes.
Heb. 10:8-18.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear and beloved wife, we have (verse 19) a
free and secure entrance into the holiest by the blood of
Jesus, by a new and living way, which He hath consecrated for
us, through the vail, that is to say, His flesh; and we have a
high priest over the house of God, which is the church, which
He cleansed with His blood, that it might be holy, without spot
or wrinkle; of which you are a member, for it is the body of
Christ, and we the members of that same body, and Christ the
head and priest of the house of God, as stated. Eph. 5:26, 27;
1:22. Hence, my most beloved, adhere to it diligently, and let
us always, draw near with a true heart, in full assurance of
faith, having our hearts sprinkled from an evil conscience, and
let us wash our bodies with pure water, that is, put off all
uncleanness of the heart and the flesh, and perfect all
righteousness and holiness; and hold fast the profession of
your faith without wavering, for He is faithful that promised;
and always consider yourself-this I entreat you, my most
beloved -to provoke unto love and to good works. Hebrews
10:22-24; II Cor. 7:1.</p>

<p>Since you are a child of the New Testament, I write you this
for a testament according to your request. Hence it is my
request of you, my dear lamb, despised of men, but chosen of
God, and called to His Testament, since He left us the
Testament, that we should thereby remember His death; namely
the breaking of the bread, showing by it that He was broken for
us on the tree of the cross, and that we should also remember
thereby, that we are delivered through Him from the hand of
our</p>

</div><div id="627"> 

<p>enemies. This He left us for an everlasting Testament, to
observe it, even as the children of Israel were commanded to
eat the Passover, and to observe it yearly for a memorial of
their having been delivered from King Pharaoh; all of which was
a figure and shadow, of which we now have the true substance,
in the true observance of our redemption through the true
Passover Christ, and His .communion, in which you are certainly
included, since it is but a short time ago that we showed it
among the others by the breaking of bread, and drinking of
wine, that you are a partaker of the New Testament, and of all
the glorious promises which are f omised the children of the
New Testament. Hence it is my request that you will faithfully
continue therein unto the end, so that you may inherit all the
promises, for he that overcometh shall inherit all things; to
him that overcometh will I grant to sit with Me in My throne;
he that overcometh, the same shall be clothed in white raiment;
he that overcometh, him will I confess in heaven before my
Father, and will write his name in the book of life; and other
beautiful promises that, as you well know, are promised to all
that overcome. Revelation 21:7; 3:5, 21.</p>

<p>Therefore, my most beloved, see that you remain faithful;
for you are still in the wilderness, where you must be proved
yet, even as Israel was proved in the wilderness forty years,
that God might make manifest thereby, what was in their hearts.
Hence know that all perished who did not remain steadfast, and
that they could not inherit the promises, as stated before. But
now we have a better testament, which is for ever, and not as
Israel, a law written in tables of stone, but written in the
tables of our hearts. Heb. 8:6.</p>

<p>Hence, my most beloved, since we have a better testament,
walk the better in it, and continue steadfast in the faith, and
let this be manifested by the fruits of faith, and the law
which is now written in your heart, by the Spirit of God; let
him be read from you, and this by fulfilling the works of the
Spirit, that you may thus be an epistle of Christ, which may be
read by all to whom you are manifest as Paul testifies of the
Corinthians (II Cor. 3:3), that they were the epistle of Christ
ministered by them, written not with ink, but with the Spirit
of the living God; not in tables of stone, but in fleshly
tables in their hearts; for Christ also says (Matthew
5:16), "Let your light so shine before men, that they may see
your good works, and glorify your Father." For if we now have a
new testament given by Christ, who is our Leader and Lawgiver,
we must keep His commandments, follow Him (as I wrote to you in
the other two letters), and show forth His image, even as the
image of the Father was shown forth through Him, as He said to
Philip, "Philip, he that hath seen me hath seen the Father; and
how sayest thou then, Shew us the Father? Believest thou not
that I am in the Father, and the Father in me? the words that I
speak unto you I speak not of myself,: but the Father that dwelleth in me, he doeth the works." John 14:9,
10.</p>

<p>Now, my most beloved, since through the grace of God you
have heard the Gospel, which has been preached in all the world
(Rom. 8:18), and believe in it, and have been obedient to it,
and are yet, as I trust through the grace of the Lord, and have
put on Christ, let Him therefore be shown forth in you, even as
the image of the Father is shown forth in Christ, through words
and miracles, as you have also always shown Him forth by a pure
Christian conversation; and thus truly follow Christ, since He
is the true Moses, who went before us. Follow Him valiantly, no
matter what you meet with in this wilderness, whether it be
tribulation or affliction, suffering or persecution; be of good
courage, Christ is gone before; follow Him boldly, for the
servant is not better than his lord; nor the disciple above his
master, nor the wife above her husband, nor the maid above her
mistress; but it is enough for the disciple that he be as his
master, the servant as his lord, the wife as her husband, the
maid as her mistress.</p>

<p>Therefore, dear sister in the Lord, be of good cheer, and
consider the long suffering and patience of Christ, and all the
pious witnesses who from the beginning until now have followed
Christ. Jas. 5:10. He did not leave them without comfort, nor
does He leave,us, who are imprisoned here for the same
testimony's sake, without comfort, but wonderfully comforts and
strengthens us through the power of the Holy Ghost, eternal
praise to Him for it.</p>

<p>Hence be of good courage, continue without ceasing in prayer
and supplication, and thus show that you are a child of the New
Testament, that the law of the Lord is written in your heart,
and is thus read. May the merciful Father strengthen you to
this end, through His Son, and the power of His Holy Spirit.
Herewith (since my paper is exhausted) I commend you, my dear
wife, to the Lord, and to the word of His grace.</p>

<p>Written in my bonds, on Monday, by me,</p>

<p class="c5">JELIS BERNAERTS, your dear husband.</p>

<h2>A LETTER WRITTEN BY JELIS BERNAERTS TO HIS WIFE</h2> 

<p>Grace and peace from God the Father, which has come to us
through Jesus Christ His only begotten Son, our Lord. May He
comfort you in all your tribulation by the power of the Holy
Spirit, which spirit is the comforter of all the afflicted, and
is sent us from the Father through Jesus Christ His Son,as the
teacher of all believers, and comforter of all the afflicted,
who are in godly sorrow, which sorrow worketh repentance to
salvation. II Cor. 7:10. This same only, undivided,
unchangeable, eternal almighty, strong God, expressed in three
names, namely, Father, Son, and Holy Ghost, in one Being, as is
written. John 5:7: There are three that bear record in heaven,
the Father,</p>

</div><div id="628"> 

<p>the Word, and the Holy Ghost: and these three are one; may
He be your Comforter unto the end; this I pray from the bottom
of my heart, through His dear Son Jesus Christ our Lord.
Amen.</p>

<p>After all heartfelt and affectionate greeting which I have
written you, my dearest and beloved wife, and sister in the
Lord, whom I love as my own soul, according to the spirit and
the flesh, since you are flesh of my flesh, and I with you, I
cannot (perceiving your sorrow) omit or neglect always to
comfort you by my writing, as long as I have time. And know, my
most beloved, that my parting from you is hard for me; but I
console myself with the Word of the Lord, who has said that we
must hate and forsake everything: father, mother, wife,
children; and that he who does not take up his cross daily,
cannot be His disciple. Luke 14:26; Matt. 16:24. And when I
also consider that the union of the flesh which we have formed
together, cannot last forever, and as the parting does thus
take place according to the will of the Lord, I renounce my own
will herein, and submit myself to the will of the Lord. Thus
you also, my most beloved, I entreat you, give yourself over to
the Lord, for He is your life and your death, as we read Rom.
14:8: Whether we live, we live unto the Lord; and whether we
die, we die unto the Lord; for we are the Lord's. And when I,
my dearest, contemplate the unity in which we still stand,
namely, in the spiritual body of Christ, since by one Spirit we
are all baptized into one body, then I rejoice that you also
stand in communion with me, and have become a partaker of the
divine nature, yea, that we have become branches on the vine,
which is Christ, sheep of the true Shepherd, children of the
promise, born of the free woman, heirs of God's kingdom, with
Christ in the kingdom of His Father, since we are born of God
through Him, by the incorruptible seed, the word of truth,
which He is, since He is the Word of the Father, and the Word
became flesh, through which Word and Spirit we came into this
communion, and became flesh of His flesh, and bone of His bone,
and are members of His body, namely, of His church, of which He
is the Head; and when I -contemplate that we both stand herein,
I rejoice, as also you, my most beloved, this I pray you; for
this union shall endure forever, if we remain faithful to Him
with whom we are united herein, and do not commit adultery, and
we shall enjoy hereafter all the glorious riches with Him in
His Father's kingdom. But know, my dear lamb, that Christ, when
He had forsaken the glory of His Father, and came upon earth,
had to take it again by much tribulation and suffering; and if
He, who is the Head, went thus before, we, the members, must
follow; and as there is but one way, and one door, the members
must follow in and through the same -the body cannot enter the
house divided. Hence, my most beloved, if we would be members
with the Head, namely, enter with Christ into His Father's
house, and enjoy the glorious riches, we must enter by the same way, and accept all that may befall us; for if
we would reign with Him, we must suffer with Him.</p>

<p>If we are children, we are also heirs, heirs of God, and
joint heirs with Christ; if so be that we suffer with Him, that
we may be also glorified together. For I reckon that the
sufferings of the present time are not worthy to be compared
with the glory which shall be revealed in us. Rom. 8:17, 18.
And Christ says, "Verily, verily, I say unto you, that ye shall
weep and lament, but the world shall rejoice; and ye shall be
sorrowful, but your sorrow shall be turned into joy." A woman
when she is in travail hath sorrow, because her hour is come:
but as soon as she is delivered of the child, she remembereth
no more the anguish, for joy that a man is born into the world.
John 16:20, 21. Thus, my most beloved, take these words of
Christ, for an example, that it must be thus with us until we
have born Christ.</p>

<p>Therefore, my most beloved, consider well the Scriptures,
how He constantly speaks of tribulation and suffering in this
present time, always, however, adding comfort, even as He
says, "Blessed are ye that mourn; for ye shall be comforted."
Matt. 5:4. Again, "In the world ye shall have tribulation., but
be of good cheer; I have overcome the world." John 16:33. And
again, "Fear not, I will not leave you orphans." John 14:18. And
even as He speaks through the prophet Isaiah, "Can a woman
forget her sucking child, that she should not have compassion
on the son of her womb? Yea, they may forget, yet will I not
forget thee." Isa. 49:15.</p>

<p>Hence, my most beloved, be comforted by these words, and by
all the glorious riches of which you have become a partaker
through faith, and you need not be astonished that you now
weep, since you certainly well know, that in this present time
nothing is promised us, but tribulation, suffering,
persecution, and weeping, but it is written, "Blessed are ye
that weep now: for ye shall laugh. Woe unto you that laugh
now!for ye shall weep." Luke 6:21, 25. Hence it is better to
weep now, than afterwards, since the time is coming which will
endure forever; and the things which now are must soon perish.
Therefore, my most beloved, cast your care upon the Lord, for
He cares for you; and be strengthened with all might,
,according to His glorious power, unto all patience and
longsuffering, with joyfulness: giving thanks unto the Father,
which hath made us meet to be partakers of the inheritance of
the saints in light: who hath delivered us from the power of
darkness, through His beloved Son Jesus Christ our Lord, unto
whom be praise, honor and glory, now and forever. Amen.
Colossians 1:11-13.</p>

<p>Herewith, I your faithful husband, commend you, my most
beloved wife, to the Lord, and to the word of His grace. Amen.
May the Lord strengthen and stablish you by His Spirit, that
you may keep unto the end that which you have and</p>

</div><div id="629"> 

<p>thus receive the crown of life, and wait with patience for
the time of your redemption. The peace of the Lord be with you,
and with all that fear and love the Lord, and keep His
commandments.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER LETTER OF JELIS BERNAERTS TO HIS WIFE</h2> 

<p>The grace and peace from God the Father, and the merits of
our Lord Jesus Christ, and the communion of the Holy Spirit, by
which Spirit we are all baptized into one body, of which Christ
is the Head, and we members together, flesh of His flesh, and
bone of His bone, and He is the Saviour of His body, and the
gates of hell cannot prevail against or withstand it, if we
remain firmly united in love among ourselves, and do not suffer
ourselves to be deceived, but hold fast the faith in Christ
Jesus, and do not neglect the grace given us of God through
Christ Jesus, His only begotten Son, our Lord, unto whom be
praise, honor, glory, and thanksgiving now and forever.
Amen.</p>

<p>After all heartfelt greeting written to you my beloved wife
and sister in the Lord, of whom I am now deprived through the
bonds in which I now am for the testimony of our Lord Jesus
Christ, and the faith in God, which I hope to seal with my
blood and death, and thus to enter into rest with all the
saints of God under the altar-which altar is Christ-and wait
for all my fellow brethren and sisters, where we shall be
gathered together and remain forever and ever, and thus be in
everlasting joy, where parting will be heard no more, but we
shall reign forever with God and the Lamb, and all the saints.
There neither sighing nor weeping shall be heard any more, but
all tears shall be wiped away from our eyes; our tribulation
shall be turned into joy and gladness, our weeping into
laughing, our parting into eternal gathering, where there will
be nothing but joy and gladness."For eye hath not seen, nor ear
heard, neither have entered into the heart of man, the things
which God hath prepared for them that love him. But God hath
revealed them unto us by his Spirit." I Cor. 2:9. Therefore let
us be of good cheer, and patient in tribulation, knowing that
we must through much tribulation and suffering enter into the
kingdom of heaven; and let us continue instant in prayer, and
firmly persevere with prayer and supplication in the Spirit,
that He will always comfort, strengthen and stablish us, so
that we may always be steadfast in all tribulation and
suffering that may befall us; in which suffering He will not
leave us without comfort; for as the sufferings of Christ
abound in us, so our consolation aboundeth by Christ. II Cor.
1:5.</p>

<p>Now, my most beloved, we may be of good cheer, and have good
courage, and rejoice in hope, that we have obtained such
glorious promises, and expect so unhoped for a salvation. For
we who sometime were far off, are now come nigh: yea. we who sometime were strangers and foreigners, are now become
fellow citizens with the household of God; and are built upon
the foundation of the apostles and prophets, Jesus Christ
Himself being the chief cornerstone, and are thus framed
together unto a holy temple, even as Peter says (I Peter
2:5), "Ye also, as lively stones, be ye built up a spiritual
house, to offer up spiritual sacrifices, acceptable to God by
Jesus Christ; for He loved us, and washed us from our sins in
His own blood, and hath made us kings and priests unto God and
His Father (Revelation 1:5, 6); even as Peter also writes in
his first epistle, second chapter;"But ye are a chosen
generation, a royal priesthood, a holy nation, a peculiar
people; that ye should show forth the virtues of him who hath
called you out of darkness into his marvellous light: which in
time past were not a people, but are now the people of God</p>

<p>which had not obtained mercy, but now have obtained mercy."
Verses 9 and 10. For we must know that we were without God in
the world, when we served the lusts of our flesh, and walked
according to the course of this world, whose friend we were,
yea, what is more, we were praised by the world; but, alas I
despised by God; for, even as James says, "Whosoever will be a
friend of the world is the enemy of God." James 4:4. Then we
were of those who had~not obtained mercy of God; for, even as
Christ says, "Ye cannot serve two masters: ye must hate the one,
and love the other." Matt. 6:24. And if we renounce the world,
and forsake our own life, to live no longer according to the
will of our flesh, but according to the will of God, He will
have mercy upon us; and turn us from lies to the truth, from
darkness to the light, from the serving of idols to the worship
of the living God. Then we who were not a people, become the
people of God, and can proclaim all the virtues and glorious
benefits which the Lord has shown us, having also adopted us as
His children; for it was such a people, converted and changed
into newness of life, to whom the apostle Peter wrote, "Ye are a
chosen generation," etc. And observe, my beloved, that he
commences his epistle as to a people who were scattered abroad
everywhere for the faith in Christ Jesus; hence it need not
surprise us, though we are dispersed, scattered, apprehended
and put to death; for thus, as you .may hear and read, it has
been from the beginning, and will be made unto the end, since
darkness does not love the light.</p>

<p>Thus, my most beloved, let us not fear; God is our Leader;
and if God be for us, who can be against us? He that spared not
His own Son, but delivered Him up for us all, how shall He not
with Him also freely give us all things? It is God that
justifieth. Who is He that condemneth? It is Christ that died,
yea, rather, that is arisen again, who is even at the right
hand of God, who also maketh intercession for us. This we know,
yea, what is more, we know that He preserves us as the apple of
His eye. and has said, "I will never leave thee,</p>

</div><div id="630"> 

<p>nor forsake thee." So that we may boldly say, "The Lord is my
helper, and I will not fear what man shall do unto me," (Heb.
13:5, 6), even as He has also admonished us, not to fear them
that can kill the body; since after that they can do no more.
But let us fear Him who has power to cast soul and body into
hell. Even as He also says through the prophet, "Who art thou,
that thou shouldest be afraid of a man that shall die, and of
the son of man which shall be made as grass?" Isaiah 51:12.</p>

<p>Hence, my most beloved, fear not that which may befall you
yet: neither be without comfort: but be of good cheer out of
bonds, and be patient in tribulation, even as I am by the help
of the Lord, in my bonds; and let us firmly continue in faith
and love, and say with St. Paul, "Who shall separate us from the
love of Christ? shall tribulation, or distress, or persecution,
or famine, or nakedness, or peril, or sword? As it is written;
for thy sake we are killed all the day long: we are accounted
as sheep for the slaughter. Nay, in all these things we are
more than conquerors through him that loved us." Rom.
8:35-37.</p>

<p>Therefore, my most beloved, have good courage, and be of
good cheer and patient in all your tribulation, and stand firm
in the faith, steadfast unto the end, so that, even as we are
now separated f rom each other by much tribulation and
suffering, we may meet in the day of resurrection, and thus
rejoice forever with one another, and reign with the Lord and
all the saints, and all the angels of God, forever and ever.
Amen.</p>

<p>To this end, may the Almighty God and Father of our Lord
Jesus Christ strengthen you, and me (and all that love the Lord
and keep His commandments) througli the power of His Holy
Spirit. Amen. Herewith I commend you to the Lord, and to the
word of His grace. Amen. The peace of the Lord be with you.</p>

<h2>A LETTER WRITTEN BY JELIS BERNAERTS TO BRETHREN AND SISTERS, AFTER HE</h2> 

<h2>WAS SENTENCED</h2> 

<p>Grace and peace from God our heavenly Father, and His Son
Jesus Christ our Lord, who gave Himself for our sins, that He
might deliver us from this present evil world, according to the
will of His Father; to Him be praise, honor, glory and
thanksgiving, now and forever, Amen. Gal. 1:4; Revelation
5:13.</p>

<p>My most beloved wife and sister in the Lord, and all dear
brethren and sisters of the church at Gh., after I was
sentenced to death, my heart felt inclined to write something
to you, and to my beloved wife, whom I commend to you and to
the Word of God, out of a true, affectionate heart, and
genuine, unfeigned brotherly love, which I have to you even
unto death. Hence it is my brotherly exhortation and epistle to
you all, not to fear those who can kill the body; since after
that they can do no more. And, as Peter says, "Be not afraid of their
terror, neither be troubled; but sanctify the Lord God in your
hearts." I Pet. 3:14, 15. And as he further says (dear brethren
and sisters in the Lord), "Think it not strange concerning the
fiery trial which is to try you, as though some strange thing
happened unto you: but rejoice, inasmuch as ye are partakers of
Christ's sufferings; that when his glory shall be revealed, ye
may be glad also with exceeding joy." I Pet. 4:12, 13. Well
might the apostle exhort us to rejoice; for I can write it with
truth, since everything has now befallen me, except death;
however, sentence has been passed upon me. In the first place I
had great joy according to the spirit when I was delivered into
bonds; though many thoughts and misgivings came to the flesh,
yet I rejoiced according to the spirit, that I had been chosen
of God, to suffer for His name. In the second place, when I had
confessed my faith before the authorities, and was then greatly
tortured, I felt that God was with me; for He gave me such
strength, that no matter what sufferings and tortures they
inflicted upon me, they could get nothing out of me, but what
,tended to the praise of the Lord, and to my salvation;
wherefore, they became angry, and asked me whether I would not
yet tell; for, sail they,"We have power to torture you thus
every day." I said, "My body is before you; do with it as you
please." After all this had taken place, my joy was still
greater; I could not express the praise of the Lord, nor
sufficiently thank Him for the grace He gave me, that I was
counted worthy to suffer for His name, and to seal His Word,
with my blood; for the marks which I then received, and the
pain, remained in my members unto the last day; the Lord be
praised forever, since I well deserved to be chastised for my
sins and transgressions. Afterwards I was twice brought before
a monk. The first time he wanted to know my faith. I said, "Ask
the authorities before whom I confessed it." He thereupon
commenced to talk a great deal about incarnation, and baptism.
When he had finished speaking, I asked him whether he meant
thereby to maintain his ground; or if he meant, that I should
interrogate him, and prove the contrary to him; but he would
not hear my defense, and began to rail greatly against Menno
and his books, which, as he said, he had read much, and found
many lies in them. I said, "Bring them all here, and let us
discuss them for a week." He replied, "You are not the man; so
much trouble will not be taken with you." We had many other
words yet about his doctrine and church, which it would take
too long to write. And thus I left him.</p>

<p>Afterwards I was brought before him again, when another was
with him. He wanted to dispute much about the sacrament,
baptism, and incarnation. But I said, "You would not let me
defend it, when I was with you the last time; hence I do not
want to speak with you now." He was not satisfied</p>

</div><div id="631"> 

<p>with this, and said he should compel me to speak, with the
instruments of the Margrave; he also asked me whether I was
ashamed of my faith. I replied, "I was not ashamed to confess it
before the authorities; but I do not want to have anything to
do with you people." We resolved among ourselves that we would
all do so; and I would advise everyone, to observe this; for it
profits nothing to dispute with them, since they are carnal
men. I was then sentenced to death, when my joy became
complete, so that I could not express it, since my deliverance
was so nigh, and I considered the words of the apostle, where
he says, "Rejoice, inasmuch as ye are partakers of Christ's
sufferings; that, when his glory should be revealed, I might be
glad with exceeding joy;" and what he further says, "If ye be reproached for the name of Christ, happy are ye;
for the Spirit of glory and of God resteth upon you; on their
part he is evil spoken of, but on your part he is glorified." I
Pet. 4:13, 14. When I thought upon this, and other passages of
Scripture, and when I saw how transient tribulation and
suffering were, and what beautiful promises were given me, and
that I was to enter into rest with my dear brethren and sisters
who went before and are under the altar, and wait for all our
fellow brethren and sisters that must yet follow us, then all
tribulation had to flee from me, when I beheld this with the
spirit.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear brethren, I do not write you this out of
vain glory, but for the consolation and strengthening of your
hearts, so that you may not be afraid of those who can kill the
body, since after that they can do no more; but that you, dear
brethren and sisters, may always be manful, and ever remember
your leaders, who have spoken unto you the word of God, even as
Paul says, "Remember them which have the rule over you, who have
spoken unto you the word of God: whose faith follow,
considering the end of their conversation." Heb. 13:7. Hence,
my most beloved, give attendance always among yourselves, to
exhortation, to reading, to praying; and do not forsake the
assembling of yourselves together, but exhort one another to
love and good works, and be firmly united in love, and use
hospitality one to another; always be of one heart and of one
soul among yourselves, so that when you get into bonds (if this
be the will of the Lord) your heart may be unencumbered.</p>

<p>Herewith I commend you to the Lord, and to the Word of His
grace. Amen. Farewell, farewell to you all, my dear brethren
and sisters in the Lord.</p>

<p>Written by me, Jelis Barnaerts, to you, my dear brethren and
sisters in the Lord, from the bottom of my heart, and out of
true love. Amen.</p><br />

<h1>JAN BOSCH, OF BERGH, OR JAN DURPS, A. D. 1559</h1>

<p>This Jan Bosch, commonly called Jan Durps, was a pious,
honorable man, and a linen weaver by trade. He lived at
Maestricht, and though the divine knowledge of the truth was
greatly es tranged and obscured, the light of divine grace appeared
unto him, and the true evangelical truth was presented to him,
and he thus joined the church of the Lord, fulfilling the
obedience instituted and commanded by Christ, the Son of God
(Mark 16:16); and as he for a time gave good heed to his
calling, it was entrusted him of the church, and he was
ordained, that he should take the oversight somewhat of the
church, and minister to her with the Word of the Lord, by
reading as well as exhorting; which, when he, though with much
reluctance, had consented, he faithfully did, putting his
talent to usury, to the best of his ability.</p>

<p>As this tended to the glory of God, and to the edification
of the church, Satan, who is ever the enemy of everything that
is good and God-pleasing, sought to destroy this good work, and
to this end inspired his ministers to report this good man to
the authorities, as a heretic and Anabaptist. The authorities,
deceived by this spirit, thought they were doing God service,
and proceeded with rashness. One of the burgomasters, in broad
daylight, went with the constables to the place where Jan
Durps, under his master, was working at the loom</p>

<p>he apprehended him, and, leading him through the city,
brought him to the Landtskroom (the city hall), and imprisoned
him there. He was immediately examined by priests and monks,
who approached him in many ways. He plainly confessed his faith
to them, and that he was baptized upon faith in Christ Jesus;
also, what he thought of the sacrament. All this he confessed
according to the Scriptures, reproving the idolatry which they
committed therewith.</p>

<p>When this petty council and the priests had examined him,
and he had confessed his faith, and immovably adhered to it,
they deemed the case so grave as to be criminal in its nature;
'hence they delivered him to the lords through the bailiff.
These took him, and put him in prison, in which Jan remained
for a time in confinement. In the meantime his wife sent him a
letter, in which she exhorted him, to be of good cheer in his
sufferings, and to adhere faithfully to the truth unto death;
which he very thankfully received, comforting, in return, his
wife, and exhorting her, and the friends together, that they
should adhere to the truth, and continue therein unto the end;
he also earnestly requested the prayers of the faithful. He
suffered many tortures, because they sought to extort from him
who, in the city, were his brethren and fellow believers. But
the Lord kept his lips, so that not a single name could be
obtained from him, however greatly he was tortured for it.</p>

<p>The time having arrived, sentence was pronounced upon him,
namely, that he should, according to the imperial decree, be
burnt alive to ashes; to which he listened with good cheer, and
submitted to it, suffering himself to be bound, and led between
many sergeants armed with sticks and halberds, which now and
then descended upon the</p>

</div><div id="632"> 

<p>head of some individual approaching Jan too closely, in
order to hear his words; for on his way from the prison to the
<i>hrijtho f,</i> Jan spoke much to the people, telling them to
remember that a man had been among them, who had told them the
truth. He urged them hard to repent, amend their life, and seek
God's grace. When he arrived in the <i>~Vrijthof,</i> where the
scaffold had been erected, said place was found to be filled
with arquebusiers fully armed, all the four companies of
arquebusier s of the city having been commanded to appear there
with their arms. Jan artlessly ascended the scaffold, too, and
was led into a but by the executioner, who then set fire to the
same in several places. As Jan stood in the flames, he cried
aloud several times, "O Lord, into Thy hands I commend my
spirit: and was thus burnt to ashes as a faithful witness of
Jesus Christ." This took place on the 23d of September, in the
year 1559.</p>

<h2>HANS VERMEERSCH, ALSO CALLED HANS VAN MAES, PUT TO DEATH AT WAESTEN IN FLANDERS, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, A. D. <i>1559</i></h2> 

<p class="c25">Confession of Hans Vermeersch, written: by
him</p>

<p class="c25">while imprisoned at Waesten in Flanders</p>

<p class="c25">A. D. 1559</p>

<p>In October, A. <i>D. 1559, I</i> was brought before the
inquisitor to confess my faith before him. He demanded to know
my age, my name, and'where-I had been; he then asked me whether
I was rebap tized. I said, "I know but one baptism, as is
written in Ephesians <i>(4:5);</i> which is the baptism of
believers, as is stated by Matthew and Mark, ini their gospels.
And also as Peter said (Acts 2:38, 41) to the people that
heard it, "Repent, and be baptized every one of you in the name
of Jesus Christ for the remission of sins. Then they that
gladly received his word were baptized." Mark, in the same
chapter, and read with attention, "They brake bread; fear came
upon them; they were all of one soul, fnd had all things
common;" all of which an infant cannot do. Verses 42, 43; and
4:' 32. He then asked me why I believed that the Gospel was
true. I replied, "Because every word .is established in the
mouth of two or three witness- es." Deut. 17:6; Matt. 18:16.
Now there are four evangelists, as Matthew; Mark, Luke and
John; who all together testify and speak of one Christ and
Messiah, who is the Son of God, and God is His Father. That
there is a God, is also clearly seen from the creation of the
world, and the signs. and wonders which we daily behold,
as causing corn, grass, apples, cherries, nuts, etc., to grow
as may be seen. That the Gospel is true may further be seen
from this: I have read that Christ says, "Blessed are ye, when
men shall revile you, and shall say all manner of evil against
you falsely; for my name's sake." Matt. 5:11. Christ also
says "Ye shall be hated of all men for my name's sake," 10:22.
When I read this, I believed it, and now I find it to be true
in me and in others, and believe that the Gospel is true. Now
everyone may know, see and: understand that it is as Paul
says, "All that will live godly: shall suffer persecution." II
Tim. 3:12. Hence I say, "By all these witnesses, who cannot lie;
we may boldly say that the Gospel is true, let every one take
good heed." With this they: tormented me greatly.</p>

<p>They .then- asked me concerning the Roman church, whether I
did not believe that it was the true church, which is built
upon the rock which is Christ: I said, "No." Then he asked me
which church I believed to be the true church. I replied, "The congregation of believers in the name of Christ, as
Christ said to Peter: 'Thou art Peter, and upon this rock I
will build my church' (Matthew 16.:18); that is to say: those
who have such a faith as Peter had, as can easily be seen in
the second epistle to the Corinthians, (6:16), where Paul says:
'What agreement hath the temple of God with' idols? for ye are
the temple of the living God; as God hath said, I will be their
God, and they shall</p>

<p>be my people?'Thus, all believers who assemble in Christ's
name are the true church."</p>

<p>They also asked me whether the sacrament used by' the church
in the mass is not flesh and blood after the consecration by
the priest-whether it is not the body of Christ in flesh and
blood. I replied, "How should, this be possible; for it is
written in Acts (1:9); that He ascended to heaven; and in the
seventh chapter -(v. 56) Stephen says: 'I see the heavens
opened, and the Son of man standing on the' right -hand of
God.' And Peter, in his first epistle, third chapter, says that
He is risen, and gone into heaven, and is on the right hand of
God; hence He is not here." He then asked me, whether He was
not able to be here by His divine power. I said, "He can do
nothing contrary to His word; He is Almighty', 'I know; but He
does not act contrary to His word." They further said that when
He held His supper with His disciples, He gave them His body as
is written in the text, since He said, "Take, eat, this is my
body." Matt. 26:26. But I replied that He did not give His
body, but a morsel of bread'; for it is obvious that it [the
body] was immediately delivered into the hands of the Jews, and
suffered, and was hung on the cross; hence' He certainly could
not give His body to eat, as -He says; Himself, "I will not
henceforth drink of this fruit of the vine;" namely, the wine
which He before called His blood. Read the tenth and eleventh
chapters of the first epistle to the Corinthians, where you can
obtain a fuller understanding. Hence He did not give His
apostles His body; but it represented His body. He then asked
me what I thought of the service performed in the church. I
said I regarded it as a great and abominable idolatry.
Thereupon he said, "Then you consider her the whore of Babylon?"
I replied"Yes; as it is written Rev. 13:4, of the beast
that</p>

</div><div id="633"> 

<p>caused himself to be worshiped; hence. as many as would not
worship him, or receive the mark in their hand. or in their
foreheads. etc., who opposeth himself against God in His
elect." He then told me that we could not show that our church,
namely, that of the Anabaptists (as they called it) had been in
existence forty years ago; and that their church had continued.
etc. I replied, "We do not keep a register for our church, as
does the Roman church; she would soon be discovered; for
everyone seeks to destroy or kill her, and she has not (as has
the Roman church) the emperor or the king for her helper, but
emperor, king or prince diligently seek to destroy her. But I
will show you that she is fifteen hundred and fifty-nine years
old. For Christ is the foundation stone and it is that long
since He was crucified." They rejoined, "Yes. the Roman church;
for she was instituted by Peter; he was the first; after him
all the holy popes, and all the holy doctors [teachers], as
Jerome, Augustine, Ambrose, Bernard, who are the four doctors
of the holy church, will you not believe these, who were such
learned men?" I said, "I believe only the Word of God."</p>

<p>They also asked me whether I did not believe in God the
Father, God the Son, God the Holy Ghost; three persons, and one
true God. I said, "I find but one person in the Scriptures." They asked me who
it was. I said, "Christ, who was seen and heard; but the Father
no one has ever seen. Who then can say what person it is? for
He is invisible. John 9:37; 1:18. Neither has any one ever seen
the Holy Ghost. True, He has been seen to descend as a dove
upon Christ, but a dove cannot be a person." Then they
said, "You do not believe that there are three persons?" I
replied, "No, unless it be shown me by the Scriptures; but I
confess that they are three in essence, yet only one true God.
The Father is not the Son, nor the Son the Holy Ghost. The
Father I confess as the Father; Jesus Christ as His Son, who
proceeded from Him; and the Holy Ghost, as proceeded from both
the Father and the Son; yet, inseparably one true God." John
17:8; 15:26.</p>

<p>He then asked me whether Christ did not assume His flesh and
blood from Mary. I replied"This will have to be shown to me."
They said"He is of the seed of David." I said, "That He assumed
His flesh and blood from Mary, this the Scriptures do not say.
Read Luke, first chapter, where the angel said: 'Thou shalt
conceive in thy womb;' and, further on, when Mary said: 'How
shall this be, seeing I know not a man? The angel answered and
said unto her, The Holy Ghost shall come upon thee, and the
power of the Highest shall overshadow thee: therefore also that
holy thing which shall be born of thee shall be called the Son
of God.' Consider these words; he says: 'that holy thing.' And
Paul says that the first Adam is of the earth, earthy; but the
second is the Lord from heaven. Read in the first epistle to
the Corinthians, in the fifteenth chapter (verse 47), where you
can see it clearly. Also, Heb. 10:5, where Paul says 'Wherefore,
when he cometh into the world, he saith, Sacrifice and offering
thou wouldest not, but a body hast thou prepared me.' Again,
John 16:28, where Christ says that He came forth from the
Father, and came into the world; and many other places, as in
chapters eight and nine. Examine the Scriptures, John's Gospel,
and the epistles." He then asked me, whether He took no
substance from Mary, in the way of nursing, etc. I replied that
she offered Him up; when He had been brought forth she wrapped
Him in swaddling clothes, and laid Him in a manger. We further
find that she cared for Him; as when at the age of twelve years
He was lost, they sought Him, when they returned from
Jerusalem. It says that they sought Him diligently, and
sorrowing (Luke 2:48). He then asked, whether she did not
suckle Him. <i>Ans.</i> "Christ spake (when the woman said:
'Blessed are the paps which thou hast sucked'): Yea, woman,
blessed is he that heareth my word, and keepeth it." Luke
11:27, 28. Ques."What do you think; tell us your opinion?"
<i>Ans."I</i> must not speak of that concerning which the
Scriptures give me no information; suppositions are of no
value." He also asked me, whether Christ was not of the seed of
David. I said, "How should He be of the seed of David; for
Christ said Himself (when the Pharisees asked whose Son He was,
whether He was not the Son of David): 'How then doth David call
him Lord, saying, The Lord said unto my Lord, Sit thou on my
right hand, till I make thine enemies thy footstool? If David
then call him Lord, how is he his son?"' Matt. 22:42, 45. They
did not know what to say. I then said, "I know that He is born
out of the seed of David, but not of the seed of David." Rom.
1:3.* They replied, "Gal. 4:4 it is written that He was made of a woman." I
said, "It is preposterous, that a woman should make a child. Do
not all the other Scriptures say: 'Born of a woman?"' He
said, "I could show in forty places, that He is of the seed of
David." But he would not show it. I then said, "If she conceived Him of the Holy Ghost, He cannot be of the
seed of David."</p>

<p>He also asked me, where men went to, when they leave this
world. I replied, "They fall asleep in the Lord, as the
Scriptures testify, namely, the believers." Acts 7:60. He asked
whither the souls went. I replied, "Paul said that he was
willing to fall asleep according to the flesh, and to be
present with the Lord; and thus am I minded." II Cor. 5:8. He
then asked where the other souls went to. <i>Ans.</i> "The
Scriptures say nothing about it; neither can I say whither they
go." Ques."What do you think about it? They go somewhere."
<i>Ans.</i> "I leave this to Divine Providence."</p>

<p>He then asked what I thought of the resurrection</p>

<p>* The author of this confession apparently bases his
argument upon a version of the Scriptures in which the
preposition, or prepositions, on which his argument hinges, are
different in signification, at least in his view, from those
occupying corresponding positions in our English
translation.-Trans.</p>

</div><div id="634"> 

<p>of the dead. I replied, "As is written I Corinthians 15:53,
where Paul says that this mortal shall put on immortality, and
this corruptible, incorruption, and that this same body shall
rise." He was unable to reply to this. He then asked me whither
children went that died without baptism. I said, "Where it
pleases God." He asked whether they were saved. Ans."Christ
blessed the children, and said: 'Of such is the kingdom of
heaven."' Matthew 19:14. <i>Ques.</i> "Then you say that they
are saved?" <i>Ans.</i> "If they have the kingdom of heaven,
they are happy enough." <i>Ques.</i> "Behold, they are damned,
this is clear." <i>Ans.</i> "Read Romans 5:17-19, where it says
that as by one man's disobedience death comes, so by the
obedience of one life comes upon all men." He further asked me
whether I would not be obedient to.the magistracy.
<i>Ans.</i> "Yes, my lords, so far as it is not contrary to the
command of God; for Peter says we ought to obey God rather than
men." Acts 5:29. He then asked me whether I would not swear
before the lords. <i>Ans.</i> "No." <i>Ques.</i> "We must obey
the magistracy; Paul and Peter teach this." <i>Ans.</i> "Christ
says: 'Swear not at all; neither by thy head, etc.; but let
your yea be yea; and your nay, nay; for whatsoever is more than
these cometh of evil."' Matt. 5:34; Jas. 5:12. Also II Cor.
1:17. He then asked me whether we were not bound to tell the
truth. <i>Ans.</i> "Yes." <i>Ques.</i> "Tell me who your
accomplices are?" <i>Ans.</i> "To accuse our neighbor is not the
truth; Christ does not teach that." He then adjured me by Jesus
Christ, the Son of the living God, that I should tell him. I
said, "I care not for your adjuring; it is sorcery." Then he
said that we were bound to act contrary to the command of God,
on account of the adjuration.</p>

<p>They greatly tormented me with those who brought the man
that was sick of the palsy; they said that his sins were
forgiven through the faith of those who brought him; and that
thus it was, through the faith of father and mother, with
infants, in baptism. But he does not say: through the faith of
those who brought him; it simply says: seeing their faith.
Matt. 9:2; Mark 2:5.</p>

<p>I have written this much out of love; if I have not written
you truly, bear with me; but I think I have written according
to the Scriptures; receive it kindly. Farewell. I must
affectionately greet the friends everywhere, requesting that
they pray for me. Know that I am of good cheer, the Lord be
praised. The grace of the Lord be with you all. Amen.</p><br />

<h1>ANDRIES LANGEDUL, MATTHEUS POTTEBACKER, AND LAUWERENS VAN DER LEYEN, A. D. 1559</h1>

<p>At Antwerp three brethren, named Andries Langedul, Mattheus
Pottebacker and Lauwerens van der Leyen, were apprehended for
the truth. Andries Langedul was apprehended at a time when a meeting had just been held in his house for the preaching
of the Word of God. Someone had spied it out, and thus the
margrave came there just after the congregation had dispersed,
and while Andries was sitting on his porch, reading the Bible.
He arrested him on the spot.</p>

<p>His wife was confined at the time, which the margrave
discovered when he walked towards the chamber, and saw that the
midwife had the child on her lap; for the woman had just been
delivered. Perceiving this, the margrave withdrew from the
chamber, but apprehended also the women who had come to assist
the woman in her distress, and caused the lying-in woman to be
guarded by some of his servants. But the nurse, vexed at this,
prevented the apprehension of the woman, by entertaining them
very liberally, and plying them with wine, so that the sick
woman was, without their knowledge, conducted, on planks,
across a well belonging to the two neighbors in common, and
thus went from her neighbor's house to the house of Christian
Langedul, her husband's brother, whose wife was also confined
at that time.</p>

<p>It has not come to our knowledge, on what particular day
Andries Langedul was apprehended, but he offered up his
sacrifice with Mattheus Pottebacker and Lauwerens van der Leyen
on Thursday, November the 9th; A. D. 1559, and this not
publicly, but they were beheaded in prison, in a place where
the other prisoners, of whom there were many at that time,
could see it from the windows of their cells.</p>

<p>When Andries knelt down to submit to the sword, he folded
his hands, saying, "Father, into thy hands I commend"-but, "I
commend my spirit" was not finished, the rapid descent of the
sword preventing it. Thus all three were put to death as lambs
of Christ for the slaughter.</p>

<p>Lauwerens van der Leyen wrote several letters in prison, the
following of. which have come to our hands.</p>

<h2>THE FIRST LETTER OF LAUWERENS VAN DER LEYEN</h2> 

<p>Grace and peace be unto all the brethren residing at Emden,
especially to my two brothers, and Tonijntgen, Lieven's wife.
May the Lord Jesus Christ strengthen you and us all, through
His divine Spirit. Amen.</p>

<p>I, Lauwerens van der Leyen, imprisoned for the testimony of
Jesus Christ on the 21st of May. On the 22nd I confessed my
faith before the Prometeur, Mr. Claes; for he came alone, in
hopes that I should say what he wanted to hear; but the Lord
kept my lips. Asked, before whom I had been to confession and
to the sacrament on Easter, I replied, "Before Mr. Lieven
Biestman, but not last Easter; for he has been dead for two or
three years." I was asked, "Do you not believe that God is in
the sacrament in flesh and blood?" I said, "No." What then do
you think the sacra-</p>

</div><div id="635"> 

<p>ment to be?"An idol," I replied. ' I was"Asked whether I did
not believe in the Roman church; of which the pope is the head.
I replied, "No; for I loathe the Roman church, for she is
utterly contrary to the truth; but I believe in the apostolical
church, of which Christ is the head.""What do you think of
infant baptism?""I ,regard:it*, as worthless and an abuse; for
I renounce triy first baptism.""Then you are not baptized?" I
said, "No.""Is baptism not necessary, then?" I replied, "Yes, it
is necessary to perfection.", "Why then are you not baptized?" I replied, "I was not good
enough yet.""Why?""Because I was too much involved in this
world, for I was, and am still, greatly in debt, and I thought
that if I should be apprehended, people would say 'that I was a
cheat, and thus many should'be offended; for this reason I
forbore to receive baptism. But I consider it good and right,
and want to live and die herein; and though I have not been
baptized, the Lord in His mercy will save me; through His
sufferings and precious blood; for I believe all that a
Christian is bound to believe; and herein I will abide, you may
do with me what you please, for I am now in your power."</p>

<p>I was further asked what I believed concerning the
incarnation; whether I did not believe that Christ came from
Mary's flesh and blood. I said, "I believe as the. Scriptures testify concerning it, John 1
and Luke. 1." And I stated it at length. Thus it remained, and
I had to note it down. This was the severest assault; it lasted
two or three hours.</p>

<p>On the 24th of May the Dean of Ronse and two others came. He
approached me with many fine words, and said, "Lauwerens, you
must suffer yourself to be instructed; it will not do for you
to depend upon a few lay men, who have made stockings for
thirty or forty years." I replied, "Do you think that I depend
upon men? He that trusteth in man is cursed, as the Scripture
says. I put my trust in God alone, and in His living Word; and
herein I will abide as long as God grants me life." Jer. 17:5;
I Tim. 6:17. But they wanted with many words to show me, that
God was in the sacrament; however, I would not believe it at
all. With these words we parted, having been together at least
two hours.</p>

<p>Written in haste, by me, Lauwerens van der Leyen, the 25th
of May, A.D. 1559.</p>

</div><div id="636"> 

<h2>THE SECOND LETTER OF LAUWERENS VAN DER LEYEN</h2> 

<p>Grace and peace be multiplied unto you, my most beloved
brethren and sisters in the Lord, Know that I was examined, and
that the margrave wanted to know much from me. I said I wanted
to tell him all that concerned my faith. He said, "You shall tell me all." I said, "What do you wish to know?"
He asked me, "What do you think of the baptism you received in
your infancy?" I said, "Nothing at all." He then wanted to know
where it was written that infants should not be baptized. I
said, "Mark 16:16; Matt. 28:19." Much incensed at me, he asked
me, "What do you think of the seven sacraments?" I replied, "I
have never read anything about it." This question he repeated
twice or three times. I said, "I have never read about it; but I
believe that Christ is sitting on the right hand of His Father,
where I hope to be with Him, when the time will be
fulfilled."</p>

<p>He then asked me concerning auricular confession. I said, "I
acknowledge a confession; but I think nothing of auricular
confession; but I confess daily before my heavenly Father."
This enraged the margrave, and he said that he should have me
placed to the stake, or thrown into the water. I told him to do
with me as he pleased, since my flesh was at his disposal. He
then told me, that he should send other learned men. I replied
that I already had the faith I wanted to believe. He said, "You
must hearken to them." I answered, "Though you cut me limb from limb, I trust I shall not deny
the Lord my God." Then the margrave and his judges were very
angry at me; for one of the latter said, that he should put me
on a galley; but I replied, "Do with me as you please." Then the
margrave said, "I shall not be so lenient to him; but we will
have him placed to the stake." I said, "I remind you of my
sentence;" and told him, how, when I was apprehended the last
time, I had been prohibited, on pain of decapitation or the
stake, from singing any hymns, and that I should take care not
to be one of such people."But" [said I]"I do not say this
because I am therefore now the bolder; for even if I had never
previously been prohibited from it, I should not want to deny
my Lord and God."</p>

<p>The margrave then asked me, "Does your mother also belong to
them?" I replied, "I wish she did." And I said, "When I used to .
gamble and get drunk, and to follow the world, I was left
unmolested; but now that I truly confess the naive of God, I am
persecuted; but it is as the prophet Isaiah says: 'Truth is
fallen in the street, and equity cannot enter; and he that
departeth from evil maketh himself a prey."' Isa. 59:14,
15.</p>

<p>One of the judges then said to me, "Have you also stolen?" I
asked him twice or three times, "Did you ever hear that I did?" but he made no reply. They
then began to speak very suavely to me, and said, "If you will
renounce all that you have said here, we shall tear this paper in pieces, and show
you mercy." And the margrave said, "You certainly know, how your sister fared on this account,
whom I caused to be thrown into the Scheldt." But I replied
that she had died for the truth; and as regards myself, "I do
not want to deny my Lord and God, who created and made me; I
will rather let you do with me whatever you please." Then the
margrave said, "Do you think we cannot also read? We, too, daily
read the Scriptures; but these cobblers and tailors want to be
wiser than we are. I.am very glad that you have fallen into my
hands; for doubtless God the Lord sent you into that house,
that I might punish you, so that others should take an example
from you." And he applied many ugly epithets to me, and
said, "You have often eaten and drank in my house; I am sorry I
did not tie up your throat." And he asked me, "If you were not a
prisoner, would you have yourself rebaptized?" I said, "If you
will release me tomorrow, I will use diligence to have myself
baptized: for this behooves believers."</p>

<p>He then asked me, "Will you confess nothing else?" and
interrogated me concerning princes and lords, and the Pope of
Rome. I said, "I hold God Almighty to be my Supreme Creator, and
my King." Then the margrave said, "I have at home a little book,
covered with chamois." I said, "My lord, that book belonged to
me, and if you will read it, you will therein find what our
faith is." He replied, "They were first published by the Pope of
Rome," I said, " I do not regard them thus; but it is the
Testament, left us by God for memorial." He was enraged at me,
and said, "I wish I had never seen you;" and irefully
said, "Begone; for I and these lords, the judges, came to
instruct you; but we shall send you other learned men." I
thanked him much for the trouble they had taken.</p>

<p>My dear friends, I did not fear them, no matter however they
threatened me. Luke and Matthew say, "Whosoever shall seek to
save his life shall lose it; but he that loseth it for my
name's sake shall find it." Luke 17:33; Matt. 10:39. They
thought they were afflicting me greatly; but I was not afraid
of them at all. I hope soon to be released from this flesh. My
dear friends, do not fear them that kill the body, but fear Him
who created and made you, and has power to cast you into the
eternal fire of hell. Luke 12:5. .</p>

<p>Herewith I commend you to the Lord; and may the mighty hand
of God guide and keep you, my dear brethren and sisters in the
Lord. They also asked me, whether I should be saved, because I
had not received baptism. I replied, " Yes, for I trust that the
Lord will have respect to my willingness, since He had respect
to Abraham's willingness." Gen. 22:12. Brethren and sisters,
pray for me, that with the help of God I may remain steadfast
unto the end. I trust that you regard me as your brother,
though I have not attained to perfection.*, " Apparently an allusion to the fact of his not having been
baptized.-Translator.</p>

</div><div id="637"> 

<p>Written by me, Lauwerens van der Leyen, July the 10th, 1559,
at Antwerp.</p>

<h2>A BRIEF CONFESSION OF FAITH, AND PART OF THE DISPUTATION WHICH I, LAUWERENS VAN DER LEYEN, HAD ON THE FOURTH OF JULY, 1559, WITH THE LORDS OF THE LAW, AT ANTWERP, AND THE DEAN OF RONSE</h2> 

<p class="c25">(To relate it all would require too much
time)</p>

<p>A confession of faith, and a confession of the eternal God,
who is from everlasting, and who will abide forever, without
beginning and without end, who is and was; this same only One
is an eternal God; and there is no other; Him I confess to be
an eternal God, namely, an eternal Father, and I also confess
His only Son to be one with -His eternal Holy Spirit. Thus He
is a perfect God, and besides Him there is no other, namely,
Father, Son and Holy Ghost. I John 5. According to my belief
and the testimony of the holy Scriptures they are one. Amen.
The almighty, eternal God, with His eternal, almighty Son, who
is also the Word of the Father; to this great,
incomprehensible, unblamable, and invisible God, who by His
eternal Word made the world, and without Him was not anything
made that was made, that is in heaven and upon earth, the
invisible became visible; to this eternal Son, who also is the
Word of the Father, be praise forever and ever. Amen. John 1:1,
2; Colossians 1:10.</p>

<p>Of Him we want to speak, of this eternal Son, who was with
I-fis Father, and was with Him in essence or in divine form,
through whom and with whom He operated from everlasting; for by
Him the world was made, and all that is in it, and without Him
there is not anything made; to this eternal Son, who is one
with His eternal Father, who is from the beginning of the
creation of God (Rev. 3:14), without beginning and without end,
to Him be praise and glory forever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>For when God made man, He created him after His image, and
made him ruler over all things, and gave him a commandment,
which he was not to transgress. ~ut as man was frail, and the
devil subtle and cunning, and deceived man by fair, pretenses,
the devil induced him to transgress the faith; and man thus
transgressing, sin was brought into the world; and he was
ashamed and hid himself from the face of God, and thus the
curse came upon the whole world; so that God said, "Cursed is
the ground for thy sake." And thus man remained under the
curse; so that no one could make atonement for sin, since it
was impossible for man, because he was weak through the flesh,
was compassed with infirmities, by sin or weakness, according
to the holy Scriptures. Hence sin could not be taken away or
atoned for by man, because all were subject unto sin. Now as it
was not possible that reconciliation for sin could be made by
man, God promised His eternal Son, even as He often spoke to the people through the prophets, that He
should raise up Jesus, the Saviour, whom He had promised
through many generations, as we find written in Matthew 1.
These promises were fulfilled from Abraham to Jesse, the father
of David; from David to Jacob, the father of Joseph, the
husband of Mary, the pure virgin, whom God honored, and who
also waited for the promise that the Saviour should be raised
up, and was not unbelieving when the angel said to her, "Behold,
thou shalt conceive in thy womb, and bring forth a son, and
shalt call his name Jesus. He shall be great, and shall be
called the Son of the Highest." Luke 1:31, 32. Here we have the
assurance that the promises are fulfilled which He had promised
from generation to generation, Matt. 1, which are now fulfilled
in that generation; hence there is fulfilled the word, Acts
13:22. I have found David the son of Jesse, a man after mine
own heart, which shall fulfill all my will. Of this generation
was born the Saviour Jesus, the Son of the most High God,
though He existed before; but He was manifested in the latter
days, to redeem us, and to gather those that were scattered, of
whom Paul says that He gave many precious promises in the Holy
Scriptures concerning His Son, which was made of the seed of
David according to the flesh; and declared to be the Son of God
with power, according to the Spirit. Romans 1:2, 4.</p>

<p>One of the judges said to me, "If Christ is not of Mary's
flesh, then the promise is not fulfilled yet." I said, "It is
not written that Christ is of Mary's flesh." This dean said to
me, "It is written; you lie, for it is written: 'That holy thing
which shall be born of thee shall be called the Son of God.'
Again: 'A virgin shall conceive, and bear a Son.' Again: 'That
he was born of the seed of David, according to the flesh.'" I
said, "My lords, it is true; but it is not written as you have
said. Hear, my lords, I call you to witness, he has brutally
called me a liar; nevertheless, it is not written thus." Again
he said, "You lie." I replied, "If I were disposed to call you a
liar, I would say that you lie yourself."I said, "My lords,
listen: Luke 1:26, etc. The Angel was sent from God to a virgin
espoused to a man whose name was Joseph, of the house of David;
and the virgin's name was Mary, and she was a pure virgin. And
the angel came in unto her, and said, 'Hail, thou that art
highly favored, the Lord is with thee: blessed art thou among
women. Thou shalt conceive in thy womb, and bring forth a son.
He shall be great, and shall be called the Son of the Highest:
and the Lord God shall give unto him the throne of his father
David, and of his kingdom there shall be no end.' Mary, said:
'How shall this be, seeing I know not a man?' The angel said
unto her: 'The Holy Ghost shall come upon thee, and the power
of the Highest shall overshadow thee: therefore also that holy
thing which shall be born shall be called the Son of God.' That
which was conceived in her was of the Holy Ghost. Matt. 1:20.
It does not say there, that He is</p>

</div><div id="638"> 

<p>of Mary's flesh." One of the judges again said, "The promise
is not fulfilled yet." I replied, "It is fulfilled; if you will
listen to me, I will tell you." I then told him that the
Saviour and Redeemer came, and suffered much here for our
sakes, even as is written that Christ the Saviour Himself
said</p>

<p>'God so loved the world that he gave his only begotten Son,
that whosoever believeth in him should not perish, but have
everlasting life.' John 3:16. And thus He came into the world.
And He left us an example, that we should follow His steps. I
Peter 2:21."</p>

<p>Again Zachariah truly said, "Blessed be the Lord God of
Israel; for he, hath visited and redeemed 'his people, and hath
raised up a horn of salvation for us in the house of his
servant David; as he spake by the mouth of his holy prophets,
which have been since the world began: that we should be saved
from our enemies, and from the hand of all that hate us; to
perform the mercy promised to our fathers, and to remember his
holy covenant; the oath which he sware to our father Abraham,
that he would grant unto us, that we, being delivered out of
the hand of our enemies, might serve him without fear, in
holiness and righteousness before him, all the days of our
life." Luke 1:68-75. Thus we find indeed, that the promise is
fulfilled; but that Christ is of Mary's flesh, this we find
nowhere written. The Dean of Ronse asked me, "How then did He
become flesh?" I told them that He who was from everlasting
with His Father, by whom all things were created and made, that
are in heaven and upon earth, visible and invisible, yea, the
living Word of the Father, who was with the Father, came from
His kingdom on high, and became man, and thus came into the
world, and saved us with His own blood. Rev. 1:5. The dean
asked, "Did He then become changed?" I told him as is
written, "The Word was made flesh, and dwelt among us." John
1:14. The dean said to me, "You are the vilest sect that ever was upon earth." I told
him that he was a rotten sect, in presence of all the judges,
or the court; and (said I) I will prove to you that you are a
sect; for your people cannot prove a single point of all that
you observe, with the Word of the Lord; and Christ says, "Every plant which my heavenly Father hath not planted,
shall be rooted up." Matt. 15:13. I then asked him, where he
found anything written concerning the institutions observed by
them, such as the christening of bells, tonsure, the
consecrating of water, that one wears shoes with holes, and
another stockings without toes, each in his own way, all of
which is certainly not sanctioned by the Word of God. I further
said, "My lords, I have offered to dispute from the holy Bible,
publicly, before the whole court." The dean said to me, "You
will be thrust into a bag, and suffocated with a ball in your
mouth." I said, "You hypocrite, do you not fear the Word of the
Lord, which says that with the breath of His lips shall he slay
the unmerciful? Isaiah 11:4. Again: 'A man that doeth
violence to the blood of any person shall flee to the pit; let no man
stay him.' Prov. 28:17. 'Ye serpents, ye generation of vipers,
how can ye escape the damnation of hell?' Matt. 23:33. 'Repent
ye, and believe the gospel; for your days may be brief."' Mark
1:15.</p>

<p>He asked me how I knew that the Gospel is the Gospel. I said
to them, "This is a strange question; but if you will listen to
me, I will tell you. Should I not know, said I, that it is
Gospel, that Almighty God said and taught: 'Repent ye, and
believe the Gospel?' and that He came down from His kingdom
above, and suffered so much for our sins; yea, He who was rich,
became poor, that we through His poverty might become rich;
when He called men unto Him, that they should follow Him, and
commanded His apostles to preach it throughout all the world:
'He that believeth it, and is baptized, shall be saved; but he
that believeth not, shall be damned.'" Matt. 28:19; Mark 16:16.
They asked how I knew that His apostles had written this; and
said, "Other men printed it; you have never spoken with or seen
the apostles-how then do you know it? There are other
evangelists whom you have never seen: how then do you know
whether this is the Gospel? Men wrote this to suit
themselves."</p>

<p>O subtle devil, thought I in my heart, and told them that
the holy Scriptures were given through the Holy Ghost, and not
without Him, since Paul says, "I will not dare speak of any of
those things which Christ hath not wrought by me, to make the
Gentiles obedient, by word and deed." Rom. 15:18. And, as the
apostle Peter has said, that no prophets ever produced the
Scripture by human will; but holy men of God spake as they were
moved by the Holy Ghost. II Pet. 1:21. Thus, the Holy Ghost
bears 'testimony, that the Gospel which we have, is the word of
the living God, which He has given us, that we should live
according to it, and thus be saved at the last day; even as it
is written that these words are written, that we might believe
that Jesus is the Christ, the Son of God, and that believing ye
might have life through his name. John 20:31'. A monk asked me
concerning infant baptism, whether I did not think it good. I
said, "Baptism does not belong to children, but to believers."
Mark 16:16. He said, "Are the children damned, then?" I
replied, "No; the kingdom of heaven belongs to them." Matt.
19:14. He said"Those who are not baptized are damned." I
said"This is nowhere written, neither, that children are to be
baptized." He said, "It is written." I said, "It is not; children have no faith; but they are assured of
eternal life." Matt. 19. He said, "It is written: 'Except ye be
born of water and of the Spirit, ye cannot enter into the
kingdom of God."' John 3:5. I said, "They cannot be born again,
for they have no sin." He said, "They have; for it is written
that all are under sin." I asked him what sins children had. He
said, "Original sin." I asked him why Christ had died. He said
that He</p>

</div><div id="639"> 

<p>had made atonement; but that we must first be baptized,
before original sin is taken away. I said, "This is speaking
contrary to the Word of God; for when John saw the Lord coming
to him, he said: 'Behold the Lamb of God, which taketh away the
sin of the world 1 This is he of whom I said, After me cometh a
man which is perferred before me; for he was before me.' John
1:29, 30. Of whom it is also written that He Himself bare our
sins in His own body on the tree. I Pet. 2:24. As John tells
us, that He was manifested to take away our sins (I John 3:5 ),
and as Paul says that they are justified freely by His grace,
through the redemption that is in Christ Jesus. Rom. 3:24. Paul
further tells us, that we should thank Him who hath delivered
us from the power of darkness, and hath translated us into the
kingdom of His dear Son: in whom we have redemption through His
blood, even the forgiveness of sins. Col. 1:12-14. The apostle
says that He upholds all things by the Word of His power, and
has by Himself purged our sins. Heb. 1:3. Again Paul says: 'But
God commendeth his love toward us, in that, while we were yet
sinners, Christ died for us. Much more then, being now
justified by his blood, and thus reconciled to him, we shall be
saved from wrath.' Rom. 5:8, 9. He says: 'Therefore, as by the
offense of one, judgment came upon all men to condemnation:
even so by the righteousness of one the free gift came upon all
men unto justification of life.' Ver. 18. Even as the prophet
Isaiah says</p>

<p>'He took our sins upon him.'" Isa. 53:11. They asked me
whether I had not yet changed my mind. I asked them, "In regard
to what should I have changed my mind?" They replied, "In regard
to your errors." I said, "I do not err; but I trust in the
living God, in His holy Word, and in nothing else; and from
this I will not depart, for Christ; has said: 'He that shall
endure unto the end, the same shall be saved."' Matt. 24:13.
They said, "Shall none be saved but you people, who began but
twenty or thirty years ago, while our church has ex'fisted
already fourteen hundred years, and has remained united-shall,
we all be damned-?" I said, "The Word of the Lord, which was
before ever your church existed shall judge men in the last
day; it shall judge all men. Jno. 12:48. This [Word] is given
us through His Holy Spirit, that through teaching we should
observe all things whatsoever He has commanded us. Matt. 28:20.
Hence, those who will not observe it have no promise of eternal
life, but indignation, wrath, tribulation, and ,anguish will
come upon them. Rom. 2:8, 9. Yea, He will take vengeance on
them that have not known God, and have not obeyed the Gospel of
our Lord Jesus Christ: who shall be punished with everlasting
destruction. II . Thess. 1:8, 9. We must therefore believe that
which has been spoken and written through the Holy Ghost, as it
is written that all Scripture is given by inspiration of God,
and is profitable for doctrine, for reproof, for correction,
for instruction in righteousness: that the man of God may be
perfect, throughly furnished unto all good works. II Tim. 3:16, 17. Therefore
we are assured concerning the holy Scriptures which we have,
that they were written by the apostles through the Holy Ghost,
as Peter has said: 'We have not followed cunningly devised
fables, when we made known unto you the power and coming of our
Lord Jesus Christ, but were eye witnesses of his majesty. For
he received from God the Father honor and glory, when there
came such a voice to him from the excellent glory, This is my
beloved Son, in whom I am well pleased; hear ye him.' Should we
not then believe these words, where he says: 'We have also a
more sure word of prophecy, whereunto ye do well that ye take
heed?' and thus we do take heed to these words."</p>

<p>They asked me concerning the sacrament of the altar. I told
them that I found nothing written about it; but of a supper
which the Lord observed with His apostles, when the time had
come that He was to fulfill that for which He had come, that it
might be fulfilled which was written of Him, and that He should
return to whence He had come. When it was. two days yet until
Easter, He said, "The Son of man shall be delivered up, to be
crucified." And His disciples asked Him, "Lord, where wilt thou
that we eat the Passover?" He told them a place to which they
should go, and went with them. And as they were eating, Jesus
took bread, and gave thanks, and brake it, and said, "Eat; this
is my body: likewise he took the cup, saying</p>

<p>Drink ye all of it; for this is my blood of the new
testament, which is shed for many; this do in remembrance of
me." Matt. 26:20; Mark 14:17; Luke 22:14. I also asked
them, "Did each eat His body, as He was with them, in flesh and
blood?" They said, "Yes; they there ate His flesh, and drank His
blood." I asked them once more, "How did they eat Him? Just as
He was with them? Did each eat a Christ?" They- said"Yes; just
as He hung on the tree of t1fe cross." I said to them, "But He
had only one body, and that had to be given as a ransom for the
sins of the world, and was delivered into the hands of the
Jews, and they hung Him to the tree of the cross, and killed
Him, and thus He redeemed us with His blood, even as is
written. I Pet. 1:19. He took upon Him our sins, and bare them
on the tree." I I Peter 2:24. They said that they had also now
had Him even as He had hung on the cross. I said to them, "I do
not believe that such a great Lord is eaten of you people, who
are utterly contrary to the Word of God, and full of
wickedness, and disobedient to the Word of the Lord; but
believe that He ascended to heaven, and is sitting at the right
hand of God His Father in heaven (Acts 1) from whence we also
look for Him to come again (Philip. 3:20); and that you do not
have Him; for if you had Him, He should be crucified once more,
hence, you people cannot be believed, since you all act
contrary to the Word of God; for it is found written that the
apostles of God held their supper with a unanimous faith; and
were all of one</p>

</div><div id="640"> 

<p>mind, and continued steadfast in all that they had seen of
God (Acts 4:32); nevertheless they did not teach or say that
they ate Christ's flesh, and drank His blood, just as He hung
on the tree of the cross; but that He ascended to heaven, and
is sitting on the right hand of God, this they taught. ' I
Peter 2:2; Mark 16. Yet, all that they taught' ryas through the
power of the Holy Ghost, and they continued steadfast in the
faith which God had commanded them. For other foundation can no
man lay, than that is laid, which is Christ, and upon this His
apostles laid their foundation, and I want to remain upon it,
without ever departing therefrom." Hence I said to them, "If yon
want to dispute with me publicly, with the Holy Bible; I shall
answer you with the Word of God, concerning all that you shall
speak with the Word of the living God. He that is right, shall
be hearkened to; but he who is wrong, shall proclaim and
confess that to this day he taught a false doctrine." This is a
small part of the words which we had with the judges, the
bailiff, and ecclesiastics.</p>

<h2>THIRD LETTER OF LAUWERENS VAN DER LEYEN</h2> 

<p>The peace of the Lord be with you. Amen. Grace be to you;
and peace, from God the Father, and from our Lord Jesus Christ,
who gave Himself for our sins, that He might deliver us from
this present evil world, according to the will of God and our
Father, to whom be glory forever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>A most affectionate greeting with the peace of the Lord to
you, my dear brother Nathanael, I; your imprisoned brother
Laumerens, wish you the grace of the Lord for a greeting, and
inform you, that I am of reasonably good cheer, the Lord be
praised; which, I trust, will continue so unto the end through
the grace of the Lord; yea, I hope thus to appear in the day of
the Lord. Know that we are waiting for the redemption of our
flesh from day to day. Know further that I send you two hymns
composed by Lauwerens de Huyvemaecker in his bonds. My dear
brother, let us always hold fast those things which we have
wrought, that we receive a full reward (II John 8); and let us
not be moved from our purpose, since we are certain that we
have the truth; and that no other will ever be found; of this
our conscience assures us. I am heartily sorry that I frittered
away my time so long with the wicked and blind world, and did
not improve it better. But though I have not been long in the
better way, and am now a prisoner, I hope nevertheless to keep
what I have, trusting in the grace of the Lord that He will not
forsake me.</p>

<p>Know dear brother, that I should have written you much more
Scripture; but you are yourself taught of God, and know the
truth. See that'you continue in it; may the Lord preserve you
and all friends therein.</p>

<p>Herewith -I commend you to the Lord, and to the word of His
grace. We twelve, imprisoned together, greet you all with the
peace of the Lord.</p>

<p>Andries Langedul, Sander Hendricks, Anthonis Claes, Hans de
Luyckener, Mattheus de Pottebacker, Lauwerens van der Leyen,
Lauwerens de Huyvemaecker. The women, Adriaentgen, wife of
Jockem; Kalleken, wife of Lauwerens de Peseinaecker;
Claeitgen,-wife of Jan Beun; Catelijntgen, Wife of Lauwerens de
Huyvemaecker; Maeyken, daughter of Andries Langedul; Grietgen
Boriaventuers, old Maeyken, and Maeyken de Korte.</p>

<p><i>By me,</i> LAUWERENS VAN DER LEYEN</p>

<p>Greet all the friends much, especially Tanneken and
Pierijntgen, in the Blind Ass, and Maeyken, daughter of
Andries. Greet Tanneken much, Lauwerens de Huyvemaecker, and
his wife, greet Prijntgen with the peace-of the Lord.</p>

<p>I, Lauwerens, your brother, bid you farewell; my dear
brother, farewell.</p>

<h2>FOURTH LETTER OF LAUWERENS VAN DER LEYEN</h2> 

<p>The peace of the Lord be with you. -Amen. Grace'and peace be
with you, from God the Father, and the Lord Jesus Christ.
Blessed. be God, even the Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, the
Father of mercies, and the God of all comfort; who comf6rteth
us in all our tribulation, that we may be able to comfort them
that are in any trouble, by the comfort wherewith we ourselves
are comforted of God. For as the sufferings of Christ abound in
us, so our consolation also aboundeth by Christ. And whether we
be afflicted, it is for your consolation and salvation, which
is effectual in the enduring of the same sufferings which we
also suffer</p>

<p>or whether we be comforted, it is for your consolation and
salvation. 'And our hope of you is steadfast, knowing, that as
ye are partakers of the sufferings, so shall ye be also of the
consolation. II Cor. 1:2-7.</p>

<p>I affectionately greet you, my dear brothers Nathanael and
Lieven, with the peace of the Lord; I earnestly commend myself
to you, and inform you,that I am of tolerably good cheer, the
Lord be praised for His great grace, which He has manifested so
richly towards me, in that He has redeemed me from this present
evil world; and that, whereas you once saw me in so exceeding
wickedness, the light of truth is now revealed to me, for which
I greatly thank the Lord, and trust that I shall continue
therein by the grace of the Lord; for, my dear brothers, know
that we have nothing of ourselves, but that all must come from
the Lord, for the Lord says, "Whosoever shall seek to save his
life shall lose it; and whosoever shall lose his life for my
name's sake, shall preserve it." Luke 17:33. Seeing then that
we have a great high priest, that is passed into the heavens,
Jesus the Son of God, let us hold fast our profession. For we
have not a high priest which cannot be touched</p></div><div id="
 641"> 

<p>with the feeling of our infirmities; but was in all points
tempted like as we are, yet without sin. Let us therefore come
boldly unto the throne of grace, that we may obtain mercy, and
find grace to help in time of need. Hebrews 4:14, 16. O my dear
brothers, as we have and know the truth, let us not part from
it, but let us always lay our foundation upon the cornerstone
Jesus Christ, so that our building may be firmly joined
together (Eph. 2:20-22), when we are tried as gold in the
furnace, that is, in all manner of tribulation, whether in or
out of bonds; for Satan sometimes torments us greatly. Eph.
6:11. Hence, let us take heed, that our crown be not taken from
us (Rev. 3:11); that we may be prepared for conflict; that we
may have the helmet of salvation on our head, and have the
sword of the Spirit. Ephesians 6:17.</p>

<p>Dear brothers, he that overcometh shall inherit all things;
yea, he that overcometh shall be clothed in white linen
raiment; then the crown of life will be prepared for us. O dear
brothers, fear not them that kill the body; but much rather
fear Him who after He has killed the body, can also cast the
soul into hell. Luke 12:5.</p>

<p>My dear brethren, you know that I have had this written to
you out of love. Excuse my little understanding. I send you a
hymn. Herewith I commend you to the Lord, and to the Word of
His grace, and bid you farewell; farewell, my dear brothers,
farewell. All my fellow prisoners greet you most cordially.
Hans de Luyckener greets his brother most affectionately, and
Anthonis Claes greets Elsgen Aerts much. Greet all the friends
much, all that fear the Lord, and remember them that are in
bonds, as bound with them. Matt. 25</p>

<p>36; Hebrews 13:3. Dear brothers, greet also Tanneken, wife
of Lenaert de Lettersetter, very affectionately, and bid her
farewell in my name.</p>

<p>Written the 25th of October, A. D. 1559, by me, Lauwerens
van der Leyen, imprisoned at Antwerp for the testimony of
Christ.</p>

<p>NOTE-The very severe decree of Emperor Charles V, made in
September, A. D. 1550, and renewed and confirmed six years
afterwards by Philip II, King of Spain, against the Baptists
(as we have circumstantially shown for the year 1556), was now,
A. D. 1560, again renewed by said Philip II, and proclaimed
everywhere in the Netherlands. See afore-mentioned defense of
William I, Prince of Orange, 'against his adversaries, edition
1569, page 165, extracted from the large book of decrees of
Ghent, etc.</p>

<p>It appears that in consequence thereof the bloodshedding,
slaying and burning of the saints increased the more, as is
evident from the following martyrs.</p><br />

<h1>ANTHONIS CLAES, JORIS TIELEMAN, AND HANS DE BACKER, A. D. 1560</h1>

<p>In the year 1560 three brethren, named Anthonis Claes, Joris
Tieleman, and Hans de Backer, were apprehended, examined and tortured; but they adhered
unswervingly to their faith and the truth they had learned and
accepted, and thus walked in the narrow path to the new
Jerusalem; wherefore they were condemned to death by the
enemies of the truth, and drowned in a tub. But even as they
had to drink in the temporal death, so eternal life will be
poured out to them by God.</p>

<h2>PETER OF SPAIN, GOMER THE MASON, AND JACOB THE GOLDSMITH, A. D. 1560</h2> 

<p>In the same year three other pious brethren sealed the truth
with their death at Antwerp. One of them was Peter, a Spaniard,
to wham, a few years previously, while yet in Spain, a brother
from Amsterdam, named Jacob Jans Ruytenburgh, had spoken, and
conversed with him different time about God and His Word. He
finally came with the brother, by ship, to Antwerp, leaving his
wife and children at St. Lucas, with the intention of returning
to them after a while, or to come and get them. After his
arrival at Antwerp, he, through ignorance, was at first shunned
by the brethren, who feared treachery, since he was a Spaniard;
however, upon sufficient examination and instruction, he was
admitted not only to the assembly, but also as a brother and
fellow member of the church of God, and received baptism upon
confession of his faith, which he truly and frankly declared
before the congregation. Shortly after, when he was about to
return to Spain, to gain his wife and children, as also, some
of his friends and acquaintances, and to bring them to the true
knowledge of the truth, he was apprehended by the margrave, who
was himself astonished to have a Spaniard fall into his hands.
He was kept imprisoned for a long time, and the Spaniards took
great pains with him; but he, orally as well as in writing,
clearly demonstrated the truth to them, in his own language,
notwithstanding which they sought to induce him to apostatize.
But as nothing could move him, remaining steadfast, he finally
boldly sealed the truth and his love to God with his death,
with Gomer the mason and Jacob the goldsmith, who were together
drowned in a tub, for the name of Christ.</p>

<h2>DEAF BETGEN, BETGEN OF GHENT, AND LIJSKEN SMITS, A. D. 1560</h2> 

<p>A. D. 1560, also three imprisoned sisters, namely, Deaf
Betgen, Betgen of Ghent, and Lijsken Smits, were sentenced to
death and drowned in a tub, in the city of Antwerp, because
they could not be brought from the truth and the love of their
Saviour.</p>

<h2>LENAERT PLOWER, JENNEKEN AND MAEYKEN OF AIX-LA-CHAPELLE, A. D. 1560</h2> 

<p>There was a pious man named Lenaert Plovier, about
thirty-six years of age, who was a native and</p>

</div><div id="642"> 

<p>resident of Meenen, in Flanders, and by occupation a
woolen-draper; and as he was a man of good report among all, he
was elected appraiser of woolen cloths.</p>

<p>Thus said Lenaert Plovier, through the grace of God, came to
the knowledge of the truth, about A. D. 1555. Having, on
account of his competency, been re-elected, to continue his
appraisership, he refused to take the oath; but his fellow
drapers were nevertheless satisfied with him, saying, "Only come with us to the city hall, and show yourself;" for
they thought that the bailiff would pay no attention to the
matter. But the bailiff could not endure his views, and f rom
that time on Plovier had to suffer much persecution, and dwell
in secrecy. Afterwards, about the year 1558, he fled with his
wife and children to Antwerp, where they gained their
livelihood by dealing in silk. But as a great persecution was
raging also there, he resolved to take up his residence in
Friesland. He sent his wife and their four children ahead,
after a sojourn of a little over a year at Antwerp, intending
to follow them as soon as he had finished his business. He then
traveled with his merchandise to the cold Ypres fair, whence he
returned to Antwerp, where, stopping a while, he learned that
the margrave was about to sally forth for the purpose of
apprehending those who would not live according to their
institutions. Lenaert left the city in order to warn some of
his fellow believers by night. He met the margrave and his
troop, who, accosting him, perceived from his answers that he
was not like they, and hence asked him, whether he did not have
a testament with him. He replied, "Yes." Thereupon they apprehended him, and he was thus taken
to Antwerp and imprisoned there. When his parents heard of
this, as also his fatherin-law, who resided at Meenen, and was
a prominent man, they came to Antwerp in haste, with Lenaert's
mother. The father thought to procure his release from prison
by shrewdness, or by bribing the margrave, representing that
his sonin-law was not a resident of Antwerp, but had only come
there to transact his business. The margrave gave them far
words, saying to the mother, who had been several nights in
prison with her son, "Go home; your son will soon be released from prison." They
therefore departed, supposing that the promise given them would
be kept. When the parents had gone away, Lenaert was examined
and questioned concerning his faith, and whether he was
baptized, which he freely confessed, expressing his
determination to adhere to the truth he had accepted, not
considering his wife and his four children, whom he
nevertheless dearly loved, as appears from six letters which he
wrote to them from prison; two of which letters are given
here.</p>

<p>After a brief imprisonment, this pious brother Lenaert, with
two young maidens, named Janneken and Maeyken of
Aix-la-Chapelle, was sentenced to death, to be drowned, which
was done in the following manner: They were put into bags, and 
thrust into wine casks, and thus drowned in prison by
night, about a fortnight before Easter, in the year 1560
(reckoning the beginning of the year from New Year's day). Some
of his fellow believers having learned that pious Lenaert
Plovier and Janneken and Maeyken of Aix-la-Chapelle were to
offer up their sacrifice in the night, they came to listen at
the door of the prison. Among them were Joost Nose and Kestine
van Damme, who gave a good testimony concerning it; they both
died at Franeker, in Friesland. Thus the aforesaid three pious
witnesses of Jesus Christ were tried as gold in the fire, and
as they were found upright, they shall receive the eternal
crown of honor and joy, with all the saints of God. Amen. This
was written by the son of the aforesaid Lenaert, and testified
to be true.</p>

<h2>A LETTER FROM LENAERT PLOWER TO HIS WIFE</h2> 

<p>Dear and much beloved wife 
, after affectionate
greeting, know that I am still of good cheer, and that I am
also well according to the flesh, which I hope is the case also
with you and those with you. But I should like to hear that it
is your determination to follow the Lord in all righteousness;
for we know not when the Lord will visit us, that we must
appear before the judgment seat of Christ, where everyone will
receive his reward, according to that he hath done, whether it
be good or bad. Hence, dear Maeyken, be obedient to the Gospel
ere that day comes, since it will come as a thief in the night
(I Thess. 5:2); for this is the true way that leads to life
eternal, which has sometimes been presented to you, and besides
which there is salvation in no other; for Christ says, "I am the
way, the truth, and the life; no man cometh unto the Father,
but by me." Now if Christ is Himself the way, the truth, and
the life, let us seek to follow the truth, and to walk this
way, that we may have life. For it is written, that the Lord
shall come to be glorified in His saints, and to be admired in
all them that believe, and for the punishment of all them that
have not obeyed the Gospel, who shall be punished with
everlasting destruction from the presence of the Lord. II
Thess. 1:7.</p>

<p>Dear Maeyken, though sometimes persecution, tribulation and
distress arise, yea, bonds and imprisonment, as is daily seen
in us and in others who want to be obedient to the truth; let
us not on this account cease to walk this way, or to follow the
truth. For Christ says, "The world shall rejoice, but ye shall
mourn and be sorrowful; but your sorrow shall be turned into
joy." John 16:20. Hence, dear Maeyken, regard not father or
mother, or children, nor anything that is in the world; for
Christ says, "He that loveth aught more than me is not worthy of
me. He that loveth father or mother more than me is not worthy
of me: and he that loveth son or daughter more than me is not
worthy of me." Matt. 10:37. For to be carnally minded is death,
yea, enmity against God, because</p>

</div><div id="643"> 

<p>it is not subject to the law of God, but this is a carnal
mind: to love father, mother, children, or aught that is of the
world, more than God, or for their sakes to cease to follow the
truth, or on account of temporal occupation, or temporal loss,
or because we have many .children and have anxiety how we are
to provide food for them. Christ says, "Seek ye first the kingdom of God, and his righteousness;
and all that you need shall be added unto you." Matt. 6:33.
Therefore do your best herein, my dear Maeyken, this is my
heart's request of you, this I pray you.</p>

<p>I also inform you, that I was at the Ypres fair. Having
returned to Antwerp, our cousin Hendrick and I took a walk out
of. the city, so that it grew rather late; and when we drew
near the city, we met the servants (or thief catchers) of the
city, who apprehended us, so that we could not escape their
hands and keep our faith. Therefore, dear Maeyken, though the
Lord has now so ordered it, that I have been apprehended, and
the time is come that the Lord will visit me, be not
discouraged, neither grieve very much,t though I know that you
will grieve; but do not grieve too much, lest you have to take
to your bed, or fall sick; for it is for the truth. Some of the
hardest things for my flesh to bear are, that I must leave you
and the children, that I cannot help you to provide food for
them, nor be a protector, and that you are not minded like we
are; but I hope that this will come about in course of time.
Hence, dear Maeyken, do your best to be obedient to the Gospel,
that, if we never see each other again according to the flesh;
we may .find each other hereafter. I should have liked to see
and converse with you once more; but my time is but brief
perhaps: It also would be very hard for you and for me, to part
from each other, although it is very, hard for me now, though
we do not talk with each other; but we must love God above
everything else; rather forsake all, than forsake God. Hence,
if you come here, or intend to do so, do your best to follow
the truth, and to bring up the children in the fear of the
Lord. Herewith I commend you to the Lord. Written at Antwerp,
in bonds. This occurred on, Sunday evening after the Ypres
fair. By me Lenaert P., your husband. Greet me Franse much, and
tell him to pray the Lord for me, that I may finish my course
to the praise of the Lord. '</p>

<h2>A TESTAMENT OF LENAERT PLOWER, WHICH HE LEFT HIS CHILDREN, WHILE IMPRISONED FOR THE WORD OF THE LORD, AT ANTWERP, WHERE HE LAID DOWN HIS LIFE IN THE BEGINNING OF THE YEAR 1560</h2> 

<p>Dear and, much beloved children N., aged, etc., when your
ather was taken from you, it was not for any crime, but for.the
testimony of Jesus, and because I loved you' unto death, and I
wish that when you have reached the years of understanding, you would seek your salvation, as Christ has taught us.
Matt. 6:33. Hence I have written you a brief admonition, that
when you. have come to the years of understanding, you,
remembering this, may seek your salvation.</p>

<p>Therefore, dear children, see that you obey your mother, and
honor her, for it is written, "Honor thy father and thy mother,
that thou mayest live long in the earth, and that it may be
well with thee; for he that curseth his father, or his mother,
shall surely be put to death." Ex. 20:12; Eph. 6:2, 3; Ex.
21:17. And be not obstinate, or gainsaying, or quarrelsome, but
kind. Neither lie; for it is written, "The mouth that lieth
slayeth the soul; for a liar has no part in the kingdom of God,
nay, his part shall be in the burning lake." Wisd. 1:11;
Revelation 21:8. Be industrious with your hands, so as to help
your mother gain a living. Gen. 3:19, Eph. 4:28. Be not
backward in learning to apply yourself to books, so that when
you have attained to years of understanding, you may seek your
salvation. Be always modest in your words, as becomes children.
And when you have come to years of understanding, take a
Testament, and see what Christ has left and commanded us there;
for all Scripture is given by inspiration of God, and is
profitable for doctrine, for reproof, for correction, for
instruction in righteousness: that the man of God may be
perfect, throughly furnished unto all good works. II Tim. 3:16,
17. For the grace of God that bringeth salvation hath appeared
to all men, teaching us that, denying ungodliness and worldly
lusts, we should live soberly, righteously, and godly in this
present world; for man doth not live by bread alone, but by
every word that proceedeth out of the mouth of the Lord. Tit.
2:11, 12; Deut, 8:3; Matt. 4:4.</p>

<p>Behold, dear children, that the Word of the Lord is food for
the soul, by which the soul must live; and he that does not
govern his life according to these words, is threatened with
eternal damnation, as Christ says, "Verily, verily, I say unto
thee, Except a man be born again, he cannot see the kingdom of
God." John 3:3. Hence Christ says, "Repent ye, and believe the gospel; for the axe is laid unto
the root of the trees; therefore, every tree which bringeth not
forth good fruit is hewn down, and cast into the fire." Mark
1:15; Matt. 3:10. Therefore, dear children, see that you escape
punishment; for those who do not obey the' Gospel shall be
punished with everlasting destruction from the presence of the
Lord. II Thess. 1:9:</p>

<p>O dear children, behold what punishment shall come upon him
who does not obey,the Gospeleternal banishment from the face of
God, and everlasting punishment. Hence, dear children, prepare
while you have time. Though some tribulation may arise over
those who seek to obey the Gospel, it will not last long when
compared with that which is eternal: for we must enter into the
kingdom of God through much tribulation. Acts 14:22. Therefore
Peter says, "Think it not strange concerning</p>

</div><div id="644"> 

<p>the fiery trial which is to try you, as though some strange
things happened unto you: but rejoice, inasmuch as ye are
partakers of Christ's sufferings; that, when his glory shall be
revealed, ye may be glad also with exceeding joy." I Pet. 4:12,
13. Even Christ our Teacher and Master had to enter into the
kingdom of God through tribulation and suffering; and the
servant cannot be more than his master; but it must be enough
for the servant that he be as his master. Matt. 10:24, 25.
Hence He says that He came not to bring peace upon earth, but a
sword; for He saw beforehand, that the world should ill endure
it, even as from the beginning it could not endure it; for they
persecuted the prophets from the beginning, though they boasted
that they had God for their Father; yet they could not endure
the good things the prophets told them, nor their warnings;
hence they persecuted, yea stoned and killed them; they did not
even know Christ Himself, who did so many signs and mighty
works among them, but crucifed Him. O dear children, lay to
heart what Paul says, "All that will live godly shall suffer
persecution" (II Tim. 3:12); and neglect not, on account of a
little suffering,.to seek your salvation; for these sufferings
are not worthy to be compared with the glory which shall be
revealed in us; for as the sufferings of Christ abound in us,
so our consolation also aboundeth by Christ; for it is
written, "Behold, the devil shall cast some of you into prison,
that ye may be tried; and ye shall have tribulation ten days:
be thou faithful unto death, and I will give thee a crown of
life. Because thou hast kept the word of my patience, I also
will keep thee from the hour of temptation, which shall come
upon all.the world, to try them that dwell upon the earth.
Behold, I come quickly: hold that fast which thou hast, that no
man take thy crown. Him that overcometh will I make a pillar in
the temple of my God, and he shall go no more out; and I will
write upon him the name of my God; yea, to him that overcometh
will I give to eat of the tree of life, which is in the midst
of the paradise of God; yea, he shall not be hurt of the second
death; yea, he that overcometh, the same shall be clothed in
white raiment; and I will not blot out his name out of the book
of life, but I will confess his name before my Father, and
before his angels; yea, to him that overcometh will I grant to
sit with me in my throne, even as I also . overcame, and am set
down with my Father in his throne." Rev. 2:10;
3:10;2:7,11;3:5,21.</p>

<p>Yes, dear children, behold what beautiful promises are given
to those who overcome. Hence, fear not men, who can afflict us
here for a short time only; for after this tribulation we shall
rest from all our labors, under the altar, with those who were
also slain for the Word of God, and shall appear with many
thousand saints, clothed with white robes, and palms in their
hands, crying with a loud voice,"Salvation to our God which
sitteth upon the throne, and the Lamb." They shall hunger
no more, neither thirst any more; neither shall the suit light
on them, nor any heat; for the Lord will be their light, and
shall wipe away all tears from their eyes; and there shall be
no night there; and they shall need no candle, neither light of
the sun; for the Lord God shall give them light, and they shall
reign forever and ever. Rev. 14:13; 6:9; 7:9; 10, 16, 17;
22:5.</p>

<p>Therefore, dear children, lay this to heart; look to these
beautiful promises given to them that overcome, and not to
those who apostatize, for these are written in the earth. Rev.
2:7; Jer. 17:13. Hence, dear children, see that you fear the
Lord, while He gives you time; for He shall come when it is not
expected. Watch therefore, and wait for His coming. Isa. 55:6;
Matt. 25:13.</p>

<p>This is the testament I leave you. Written at Antwerp, in
prison, where I was confined for the testimony of Jesus. By me,
your father,</p>

<p>LENAERT PLOVIER.</p>

<h2>NICHOLAS FELBINGER AND JOHN LEYTNER, IN THE YEAR 1560</h2> 

<p>In the year 1560 brother Nicholas Felbinger, or Schlosser, a
willing minister of the Word of God, who was on trial yet, was
apprehended, with another brother by the name of John Leytner,
not far from Neumarkt, in Bavaria, where they had come on the
first day after Judica,* in Lent, on their flight on account of
the faith. They were taken to Neumarkt, where they were twice
examined by the judge and his assessors, and interrogated
especially with regard to infant baptism. But having clearly
and thoroughly shown that Christ had not commanded it, but only
the baptism of adults, who hear, understand, believe, and
accept the Word of God, they were, early next morning, placed
in a cart, and, escorted by horsemen and guards, sent to
Landshut, where each was imprisoned separately, and Nicholas
kept chained. Afterwards the council met, and summoned them
before them; they spoke much with them, but could accomplish
nothing.</p>

<p>They then sent two learned men, namely, two Dominicans, to
them, who conversed with them about the sacrament, infant
baptism, and why they had left the papal church; but the
brethren answered them from the Word of God, that they had to
leave it.</p>

<p>Hence they then tried them by torture, racking them
severely, especially most severely when they wanted to know
where they had lodged, and whither they intended to go. But
Nicholas said, "We are not bound to tell you these things." They
asked, "Why?" He said, "Because you confiscate their property,
torture and kill them for it, and sin against them. Should we
betray those who do us good? we do not betray even our
enemieswhy then our friends?" They said:*"Then we will not
cease to torture you, till you tell us," and</p>

<p>* Fifth Sunday in Lent.</p>

</div><div id="645"> 

<p>left them lying on the rack a long time, until the
executioner himself interceded in their behalf, and said, "Do
desist; for though they be tortured all day, you will get
nothing out of them."</p>

<p>Then the judge became enraged, and called them rogues and
condemners of others. But Brother Nicholas said, "We condemn no
one; but your sins condemn you, if you do not desist from them,
this we testify according to the truth."</p>

<p>The superior judge asked, "What is truth?" The brother
replied, "You would not understand it, though I should tell you;
for you know as much what truth is, as did Pilate, who asked
the same question." John 18:38.</p>

<p>After this, two doctors were sent from the monks to them, a
distance of over nine leagues; who endeavored in many and
various ways to turn them, but were not able to do it. Likewise
the chancellor and the lord of Landshut came to them once, and
assailed them; but they found them steadfast in their faith,
and had to leave them steadfast, being unable to gain them by
their false and seductive counsels.</p>

<p>Two priests and a doctor in the Scriptures then came to
them, and vehemently argued with them about infant baptism; but
Nicholas vigorously withstbod them with the Scriptures, and
drove them from him.</p>

<p>After these, the chancellor and several Dominicans came to
them, and sought to move them by suavity; but they valiantly
withstood all the gates of hell, fully assured that they stood
in the divine truth, which they faithfully and thoroughly
defended, and said that they wanted to adhere to it in the
simplicity of Christ. Thereupon the chancellor said to Brother
Nicholas, "Are you simple? I cannot believe this; a hundred
might come, before there should be one who could defend himself
like you; but I consider you an enthusiast, even as many are
found at present, who roam about without reason." But they
boldly confessed and defended their faith, and God gave them a
mouth and wisdom which the others were not able to resist. Luke
21:15.</p>

<p>After all this, they were sentenced to death by the children
of Pilate, and Brother Nicholas' tongue was tied fast, that he
should not speak to the people at the place of execution;
towards the close, however, his tongue was freed so much that
the two brethren could converse together.</p>

<p>John Leytner, whom the executioner proceeded to execute
first, said to Nicholas, "Dear brother, if my death should
terrify you, go forward first, and I will wait for the last."
But brother Nicholas said, "Oh, no, Oh, no; I do not dread it."
And thus John valiantly offered his neck to the sword, and was
beheaded, Nicholas beholding it with intrepidity and boldness,
as though it did not concern him. He then advanced also, knelt
down, and offered his head, which was struck off for his faith,
as bad been done to the other. Thus these two testified to the divine truth with their blood, which
took place on the 10th of July, 1560.</p>

<h2>JORIS AND JOACHIM, A. D. 1560</h2> 

<p>A. D. 1560 there were brought before the court at Antwerp
two pious Christians, named Joris and Joachim. As they were
standing as sheep for the slaughter before the lords, the
bailiff asked Joris whether he was rebaptized. He replied, "I am
baptized according to the doctrine of Christ, as He commanded
His apostles, saying: 'Go and preach to all nations. He that
believeth and is baptized, shall be saved.' Matt. 28:19; Mark
16:16. Hence they must first be taught and believe, and then be
baptized in the name of the Father, the Son, and the Holy
Ghost."</p>

<p>The bailiff also asked Joachim whether he was baptized. He
replied, "I hold to one baptism, one faith, one Lord, and God."
Eph. 4:5, 6.</p>

<p>Then the lords sentenced them according to the king's
mandate, whereupon Joachim, hearing his sentence, said, "My
lords, we thank you for your trouble with us; but may God
forgive you the blindness of your heart, and grant that you may
become enlightened."</p>

<p>As they were coming out of the court, they said, "We are not
ashamed of the Gospel" (Rom. 1:16); and while walking in the
street, they sang</p>

<p class="c3">"O Lord forever in my thought Thou art;</p>

<p class="c3">My soul doth long to be close to Thy heart."</p>

<p class="c3">Ps. 143:8.</p>

<p>Thereupon Joachim said, "Fear not them that kill the body;
for hereafter, when they mourn, we shall rejoice." Luke
6:23.</p>

<p>Thus they as giants in the faith pressed through the strait
gate to the new Jerusalem. After they had come to the place
where they were to offer up their burnt sacrifice, they gave
each other the kiss of peace. Standing at the stake, Joachim
said, "O Father, forgive them that inflict this suffering upon
us; but we thank Thee that Thou hast made us worthy to suffer
for Thy name; therefore, O Lord, assist us, and succor us with
Thy help in this last extremity." Joris said, "Lord Thou knowest
that I have sought Thee and my salvation; and for this cause I
must now die. Therefore, O Lord, receive me graciously." He
further said, "Citizens of Antwerp, fear not; though we die for
the truth, Christ our Lord went before us, and we must follow
Him." They then began to sing this farewell hymn, "Farewell,
brethren and sisters all," etc. Thereupon they commended their
spirits into the hands of God, and ended their lives in the
fire. They now lie under the altar, and wait to be clothed with
white linen raiment, and to shine forth as the sun in the
kingdom of the Father, where they shall be served with new wine
and heavenly bread. Rev. 6:9; 19:8; Matt. 13:43; 26:28; Rev.
2:17.</p>

</div><div id="646"> 

<h2>WILLEM DE KLEERMAECKER, A. D. 1560</h2> 

<p>In the year 1560 a brother named Willem de Kleermaecker was
apprehended for the truth, and sentenced to death, at
Antwerp.</p>

<p>Having been brought into the court, he was asked by the
bailiff, whether he was rebaptized. He replied, "Why do you ask
concerning my baptism, and not regarding my life and faith;
then you could pass a right judgment upon me, and this people
could follow it?" The bailiff asked again whether he was not
rebaptized. Willem said, "You want but one word, and I made a confession before this:
judge rightly, and once more consider the matter well." The
bailiff asked whether he was rebaptized. Willem said, "You alone
have asked me until this; may I not now ask you?" The bailiff
said, "Answer first; then I shall tell you." Willem said, "I wish
you would once think of that day that shall burn as an oven,
When the ungodly shall perish like stubble." Mal. 4:1. He
further said (Mark 16:16) it is written, "He that believeth .and
is baptized shall be saved." The bailiff said, "You are not
asked concerning that." Willem said, "Infants cannot believe;
therefore I had myself baptized upon my faith."</p>

<p>The lords. then went in, and Willem said to the
people, "Repent and amend your ways." The bailiff forbade him to
speak, but he said, "Do let me speak; for it cannot last long."
Presently the lords returned, and Willem said, "My lords, judge
not according to the king's decree, if you do not want to be
lost; but think of that day which no one can escape, in which
you will regret it, unless you become converted." He was then
sentenced, and his sentence read to him; whereupon, though it
was still early in the morning, he was taken to the
marketplace, and there strangled and burnt at the stake. Thus
he fought his way through as a valiant soldier of Christ.</p>

<h2>JOHN KORBMACHER, GEORGE RAECK AND EUSTACE KUTER, A. D. 1560</h2> 

<p>In the same year, on the first Friday after St. Martin's
day, brother John Korbmacher, a minister of the Word of God and
of His church (who was frequently sent out into the work of the
Lord), was apprehended for the faith and the Word of God, near
Rosenhaus, in Bavaria, together with George Raeck, a deacon,
and another brother named Eustace Kuter, who were together
taken to Innspruck, and there delivered over to the
authorities. John Korbmacher, on account of his being a
minister, was taken to Fulleburg, where he was put into a deep
tower full of vermin; bats fluttered about him; mice carried
off his victuals, and numerous spooks haunted his abode, so
that it would have terrified a person not possessed with a firm
trust in God.</p>

<p>When the lord wanted to speak with him, he had him called by
name, that he should quickly get ready and prepare himself for suffering. The other two
brethren were imprisoned at Innspruck, in the Krauterthurm;and
all three remained in confinement until the close of the year
1560. Afterwards, on the 2nd of January, the authorities
severely examined John Korbmacher, as also Eustace, and George
Raeck, each separately. They faithfully answered many articles,
all of which were written down, together with their confession
concerning them, and this was then sent to Vienna and
elsewhere, as something new.</p>

<p>After this they were led back into the aforementioned towers
or prisons, where they remained until the Friday after St.
Vitus' Day, which was the 13th of June, when they were
sentenced to death. On that occasion a great multitude was
present, and the brethren spoke boldly to the lords of the
court and jurors, showing to them, that the sentence and
judgment which they passed upon them in the sight of God, since
they condemned innocent blood, should rise up for a testimony
of their condemnation. And when they said that they had to
judge according to the imperial decree and mandate, John
Korbmacher said, "O you blind judges, we must certainly judge
according to our heart and conscience, if we want to render an
account of it before God. Hence, if you judge according to the
imperial mandate, how will you answer for it before God?" And
Eustace said, "What have we to do with the imperial mandate that
you read it to us? Read our confession, which we have testified
with the holy, divine and biblical Scriptures to be the truth
of God, for which we must suffer." Thus they boldly spake, and
exhorted the people to repent. The brethren George Raeck and
Eustace were led out of the court first, when George began to
cry to the people, to repent, desist from sin, and also enter
upon the way of truth, since it was the truth for which he was
to be executed today.</p>

<p>Then John Korbmacher was also led out, so that they joyfully
met at the place of execution, and praised God. A brother named
Leonard Dax, went to them, and shook hands with them, and they
took farewell of one another; on account of which they greatly
rejoiced, and praised God, that they had seen a pious brother
yet, who should inform the brethren and the church of their
end. Then John Korbmacher, the minister, began to speak to the
people, and to admonish them, to repent of their sins, and to
follow the truth of God, that they might not be damned, but
saved in Christ Jesus. Yea, he lifted up his voice with the
utmost boldness, and said, "What I have taught and confessed is
the divine truth, and I will testify to it with my blood." Thus
he did not cease to preach repentance, so that the judge said
several times, "O John, stop a little." John then stopped for a
little while; but presently he spoke again, so that he became
almost hoarse from speaking. Almost up to their last moment
they exhorted the people to repentance; nor were they prevented
from speaking,</p>

</div><div id="647"> 

<p>but full liberty was given them to speak. They were also
permitted to converse with each other. They also fervently
prayed to God, praising and glorifying Him, that He had
hitherto kept them courageous and stedfast, and praying Him
that He would continue to thus faithfully keep them until death
(which was now at hand), and receive their spirits into His
hands, now that body and soul were about to separate.</p>

<p>Their sentence was then read, in which, among others, these
articles were particularly mentioned. First: They do not
believe that the holy body of Jesus Christ is in the
,sacrament, but observe the Supper as Christ observed it with
His disciples. Secondly: They do not believe in infant baptism,
but in the baptism of adults; as Christ commanded it. Thirdly:
They believe in marriage (which article they confessed, and did
not deny); and the like articles, which were written there, and
read</p>

<p>as also, what they thought and confessed of the Roman
church; but this was written in as vituperative language as it
had been possible for the judge to put it.</p>

<p>They were then led to the place of execution; called the
Schweinacker, near the Schafhuetten. There Eustace, who was
feeble and sick according to the flesh, was beheaded first.
After him Brother George Raeck cheerfully stepped forward to
the executioner, and exclaimed with a joyful heart, "Here I
forsake wife and children, house and home, body and life, for
the faith and the divine truth." He then knelt down, and the
executioner beheaded him also.</p>

<p>John Korbmacher was reserved for the last, who, when he
beheld the other two lying there beheaded, said, "My brethren,
you who have overcome shall inherit ail things, " The
executioner then took him, tied him to a ladder, kindled the
fire, and threw him alive into the same. He also laid the two
beheaded bodies upon a pile of wood, and burnt them to
ashes.</p>

<p>Thus did they testify their faith in Christ with their word,
life and death, yea, voluntarily and patiently, with their body
and blood, confessing that God gave them such strength as a
blessing; and thus tthey with firm confidence departed from
this world to go to the eternal fatherland.</p><br />

<h1>SOETGEN VAN DEN ROUTE, AND MARTHA, A. D. 1560</h1>

<p>At this time also a pious woman named Soetgen van den Houte
fell into the hands of the persecutors of the truth, so that
after severe assaults and imprisonment she testified and
confirmed the faith of the ever enduring truth with her death
and blood, on the 27th of November, 1560, in the city of Ghent;
and with her another woman, named Martha. Soetgen van den Houte
also states that her husband had previously likewise valiantly
trodden the winepress of suffering and fearlessly testified the
truth, and gave his life for it, as the following testament
clearly shows.</p>

<h2>A TESTAMENT OF SOETGEN VAN DEN ROUTE, WHICH SHE LEFT HER CHILDREN, DAVID, BETGEN AND TANNEKEN, FOR A MEMORIAL, AND FOR THE BEST, AND WHICH SHE CONFIRMED WITH HER DEATH, AT GHENT, FLANDERS</h2> 

<p class="c25">In the name of the Lord:</p>

<p>Grace, peace and mercy from God the Father and the Lord
Jesus Christ, this I wish you, my dear little children, David,
Betgen, and Tanneken, for an affectionate greeting, written by
your mother in bonds, for a memorial to you of the truth, as I
hope to testify by word and with my death, by the help of the
Most High, for an example unto you. May the wisdom of the Holy
Ghost instruct and strengthen you therein, that you may be
brought up in the ways of the Lord. Amen.</p>

<p>Further my dear children, since it pleases the Lord to take
me out of this world, I will leave you a memorial, not of
silver or gold; for such jewels are perishable: but I should
like to write a jewel into your heart, if it were possible,
which is the word of truth, in which I want to instruct you a
little for the best with the Word of the Lord, according to the
little gift I have received from Him and according to my
simplicity.</p>

<p>In the first place, I admonished you, my most beloved,
always to suffer yourself to be instructed by. those who fear
the Lord; then you will please God, and as long as you obey
good admonition and instruction, and fear the Lord, He will
be-your Father and not leave you orphans. For David says, "What man is he that feareth the Lord? him shall he teach in
the way that he shall choose." Ps. 25: 12. He also says, "The
eye of the Lord is upon them that fear him, upon them. that,
hope in his mercy; to deliver their soul from death. The angel;
of the Lord encampeth round about them that fear him. O fear
the Lord, ye his saints: for there is no want to them that fear
him; for the fear of the Lord is the beginning of wisdom." Ps.
33:18, 19; 34:7, 9; 111:10.</p>

<p>Therefore, dear children, learn to fear the Lord, and you
will receive wisdom. The wise man says, "A wise son heareth instruction. Whoso loveth correction and
instruction loveth knowledge., A wise son feareth and escheweth
evil. A wise son maketh a glad father; but a foolish son
putteth his mother to shame. He that walketh with wise men
shall be wise; but the companion of fools shall be like them.
He that refuseth correction and instruction destroyeth his own
soul; but he that heareth reproof will become wise."</p>

<p>O my most beloved, depart not from correction. The wise man
says, ",Chasten thy San while there is hope." Prov. 19:18.</p>

<p>Hence, my most beloved, grieve not when you are corrected,
and speak not crossly to those -who correct you. A soft answer
turneth away wrath; but grievous words stir up anger. Prov.
15:1. If</p>

</div><div id="648"> 

<p>you are crossly, spoken to, learn to answer kindly, and you
will be loved by all men; for humility and meekness are
acceptable to both. God and men.</p>

<p>Furthermore, my dear children, I admonish you, to beware of
lying; for liars have no part in the kingdom of God. Rev. 21:8.
It is also written, "Lying lips are an abomination to the Lord, and he whose
mouth lieth, his soul shall die." Prov. 12:12; Wisdom 1:11.
Therefore, my dear children, beware of it; for he that deals in
lies is loved by no one.</p>

<p>My dear children, keep this in your hearts; my dear lambs,
guard your tongue, that it speak no evil; neither practice
deceit with your lips; nor be guilty of backbiting, for thereby
come contention and strife,; but Paul teaches us, to live
peaceably with all men if it be possible. I Pet. 3:10; Romans
12:18.</p>

<p>My most beloved, keep this sent you from your mother; and
obey your parents; and those whose bread you eat, and all who
admonish you to virtue. Eph. 6:1. Always be diligent to do your
work, wherever you be; for Paul says that if any. will not
work, neither shall ,he eat. I I Thess. 3:10.</p>

<p>It is also written, "Be diligent to labor, that you may have
to give to him that needeth." Eph. 4:28. Hence, turn not your
face away from the poor."Whoso stoppeth his ears at the cry of
the poor, he also shall cry himself, but shall not be heard."
Prov. 21:13. Tobit taught his son, saying, "Son, if thou hast
abundance, give alms accordingly: if thou have but little; be
not afraid to give according to that little." Tob. 4:8. Alms
given of one's labor is acceptable to God. The wise man
says, "Alms purge out sin." We also read of Cornelius and Tobit
that the angel said, "Thy prayers and thine alms are come up for
a memorial before God, whom thou didst beseech with tears, and
didst leave thy dinner to go and bury the dead." Acts 10:4;
Tob. 12:13.</p>

<p>Therefore, be diligent in prayer, and love the poor; for
Christ also was poor for our sakes. . II Corinthians 8:9. Be
therefore also merciful, even as your heavenly Father is
merciful; for such shall be blessed, and shall obtain mercy.
Also learn to be meek and lowly in heart; for such are blessed
and shall inherit the earth. Luke 6:36; Matt. 5:5. And blessed
are the pure in heart; for they shall see God.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear children, let no impure thoughts remain in
your hearts, but engage yourselves with psalms, hymns, and
spiritual songs, and evil thoughts will have no room. Neither
let filthiness proceed out of your mouth; for of this an
account will have to be given. Eph. 5:19, 4; Matt. 12:36.</p>

<p>Furthermore, my most beloved, wherever you be esteem
yourselves as the least, and be not wise in your own conceit,
but always suffer yourselves to be instructed by those who are
above you, and always be silent when others speak. Humble
yourself beneath all men; for whosoever shall exalt himself
shall be abased; but he that shall humble himself shall be exalted. Matt. 23:12. For Christ, who is
the greatest, made Himself the least, for an example unto us.
Ps. 8:6; John 13:13. And, as is written, "The greater thou art,
the more humble thyself and thou shalt find favor before the
Lord; for the power of the Lord is great, and he is honored of
the lowly." Sir. 3:18, 20.</p>

<p>My children, be also just in all your dealings; for in the
way of the just there is life, and in the beaten path there is
no death. It is joy to the righteous to do that which is right,
but fear to evildoers. Further, choose to earn your bread by
the labor of your hands, and to eat your bread with peace. Seek
not to be a merchant, nor be anxious for great gain. Better is
little with the fear of God, than great treasure and trouble
therewith. Better is a dry morsel, and quietness, than a house
full of sacrifices with strife. Prov. 15:16; 17:1.</p>

<p>My children, love not dainties, nor wine. He that desires
costly feasts will not become rich; but be content with the
labor of your hands. Overtax no one, but be satisfied with what
is reasonable, as you have seen of me. Be burdensome to no one,
as long as you can obtain the things needful. It is more
blessed to give than to receive. Acts 20:35. And Paul says, "If
ye have food and raiment, be therewith content." I Tim.
6:8.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear children, take an example from this, and
always go on in the ways of the Lord with sobriety and
thankfulness, as you have heard me read of Daniel, of Shadrach,
Meshach and Abednego, who were selected by the king of Babylon,
to be nourished with the same wine and meat which the king
drank and ate at his table, in order that they might be
beautiful, to serve the king. But they would have nothing but
pulse and water; they wanted to observe the law and
commandments of their fathers with sobriety and thankfulness in
the fear of God, and they were fairer and fatter than those who
ate of the king's dainties. Dan. 1.</p>

<p>Thus faithfully they walked in the ways of the Lord, with
prayer and supplication made themselves acceptable to Him;
therefore God did great things through them, and delivered them
from the den of lions, and out of the fiery furnace. And
Joseph; when he was sold into Egypt, desired no dainties, nor
wine, because the Egyptian women sought to seduce him; but he
feared God, and God preserved him. He pleased God by sobriety
and prayer, so that he was appointed ruler over Egypt. Gen. 37,
39, 41.</p>

<p>My dear children, take an example from this, in your youth,
and you will please God, and He will keep you from all
seduction.</p>

<p>O my lambs, you are still in your youth, in your infancy;
you have yet your part in your Father's kingdom; see that you
keep it well and do not as Esau did, who gave his inheritance
or birthright for a mess of pottage; not regarding his father's
blessing. he gave it away for perishable food. Gen. 25:33. But
Jacob chose the better part, and was</p>

</div><div id="649"> 

<p>obedient to God and his father, walking the ways of the Lord
with all righteousness.</p>

<p>My most beloved, seek instruction, so that you may be
taught, and know which is the true way; for you may now choose
life or death, good or evil; whichever you desire, shall be
given you (Sirach 15:17); namely, if you delight in evil, so
that you choose the pleasures of the world (from which springs
all unrighteousness), namely, lying and cheating, gambling,
playing, swearing, cursing, backbiting, hatred, envy,
drunkenness, banqueting, excess, idolatry, covetousness,
lasciviousness, vanity, filthy conversation, dancing, and so
forth; which things, though the world does not consider them
sins, but amusements, are nevertheless abominations in the eyes
of the Lord. I Pet. 4:3.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear children, take heed; if you take pleasure
in these things, you sell your birthright or the inheritance
from your father, for a mess of pottage, namely, for a few
temporal pleasures, which lead you to damnation. See whether
all the great multitude do not choose to walk. this way. Hence
Esdras has truly said that there is much more earth found, to
make earthen vessels, than gold, to make golden vessels. And as
the wave is greater than a drop, so there will be more that
will be damned. II Esd. 8:2, 3; 9:15, 16. For many are called,
but few are chosen, for they do not heed their call; as Christ
says, "My sheep hear my voice, and they follow me; but these
follow the great multitude of the ungodly and false prophets."
John 10:27.</p>

<p>Hence Isaiah says, "Hell hath opened her mouth wide, to
receive the proud and all that do unrighteousness, and all that
will not repent." Isa. 5:14.</p>

<p>Therefore, behold, my most beloved, if you suffer yourselves
to be instructed in virtue, you will follow the voice of the
Lord, as from the time of Abel until now many who suffered have
done; they were rejected, despised, persecuted and killed
because they would not follow the wicked world and her false
prophets.</p>

<p>Behold, my most beloved, choose rather to suffer affliction
with the children of God, so that you may be rewarded with
them; for they are the ones to whom belong all the beautiful
promises, but they must suffer much, for the kingdom of heaven
suffereth violence, and the violent take it by force. Matt.
11:12. It is also written, "Ye must through much tribulation
enter into the kingdom of heaven." For David says, "We are led
to death as sheep for the slaughter." And Paul says, "We which
live are always delivered unto death." It is also written, "Ye
shall weep and lament, but the world shall rejoice; and ye
shall be sorrowful, but your sorrow shall be turned into joy.
Ye shall have tribulation for a little while, but be of good
cheer and be faithful unto death, and I will give you a crown
of life." Revelation 2:10. In the world ye shall have
tribulation; but be of good cheer; I have overcome the world.
John 16:33. And God shall wipe away all tears from their eyes.
We further read, "The marriage of the Lamb is come, and his wife hath
made herself ready. And to her was granted that she should be
arrayed in fine linen, clean and white; for the fine linen is
the righteousness of saints.""Blessed are they which are called
unto the marriage supper of the Lamb." Rev. 19:7-9."Then shall
the righteous shine forth as the sun in the kingdom of their
father." Matt. 13:43.</p>

<p>See, my most beloved, this is the better part and reward of
all those who fear the Lord, walk in His ways and keep His
commandments. These are they to whom the Lord says, "Fear not,
thou worm Jacob, and <i>ye</i> few men of Israel: I will not
leave you orphans; but I will be your God, and ye shall be my
people; and I will keep you as the apple of mine eye; yea, if
ye keep my commandments, though ye were cast out unto the
uttermost part of the heaven, yet will I gather you from
thence, and will bring you unto the place that I have chosen."
Isa. 41:14; 51:7; Zech. 2:8; Deut. 30:4; Neh. 1:9.</p>

<p>Oh, who would not love such a Lord and Father, who has
chosen us, as He chose Israel, and has given us His
commandments and laws, namely, His Gospel, which teaches us to
do His will, and His pleasure; and such He has made heirs of
all the riches of heaven. <i>Isa.</i> 49:7.</p>

<p>O my dear children, I have written this in tears,
admonishing you out of love, praying for you with a fervent
heart, that, if possible, you might be of this number. For when
your father was taken from me, I did not spare myself day or
night to bring you up, and my prayer and solicitude were
constantly for your salvation, and even while in bonds my
greatest care has always been that my prudence did not enable
me to make better provision for you. For when it was told me,
that you had been taken to Oudenarde, and thence to Bruges, it
was a hard blow for me, so that I never had a greater sorrow.
But when I thought that my coming or providing could not help
the matter, and that for Christ's sake we must separate from
all that we love in this world I committed all to the will of
the Lord, and I still hope and pray constantly, that He in His
mercy will preserve you, as He preserved Joseph, Moses and
Daniel in the midst of wicked men. And He will do this, if you
give diligence to follow the truth; then the angel of the Lord
will be with you, even as He was with Tobias, guiding him until
He brought him to his father's house, where he rejoiced with
his father and his friends, thanking God for His great
goodness. Tobit 7:11.</p>

<p>Thus also, if you will follow good instruction, it will
guide you safely through every danger, and bring you to your
Father's house, where there is such joy prepared, that ear has
not heard, nor eye seen, nor has it entered into the heart of
man, what joy is prepared for the elect; but to the elect God
has revealed it by His Holy Spirit. Isa. 64:4; I Corinthians.
2:9, 10.</p>

</div><div id="650"> 

<p>May the word of the Father bring you to this, through the
mercy of the Son, and may the wisdom of the Holy
Ghost;strengthen you, that you may apprehend it. Amen.</p>

<p>David, my dear child, I herewith commend you to the Lord.
You are the oldest, learn wisdom, that you may set your sisters
a good example; and beware of bad company, and of playing in
the street with bad boys; but diligently learn to read and
write, so that you may get understanding. Love one another,
without contention or quarreling; but be kind to each other.
Let the one that is wise bear with him who is simple, and
admonish him with kindness. Let the strong bear with the
feeble, and help him all he can, out of love. Let the rich
assist the poor, out of brotherly love. Let the younger obey
the older in that which is good. Admonish one another to be
industrious, so that people may love you. Exhort one another to
good works, to modesty, honorableness and quietness. Always
care for one another; for the time has come, that love shall
wax cold; yea, if it were possible, the very elect would be
deceived. Matt. 24:12, 24. Hence, take heed and learn
diligently to search the Scriptures, so that you may not be
deceived; but always hold to the first and second commandment,
which will teach you aright. Do not easily believe it, when
evil is told you of another, but examine the matter; and make
no commotion when you are slandered, but bear it for Christ's
sake.</p>

<p>Love your enemies, and pray for those who speak evil of you,
and afflict you. Rather suffer wrong, than that you should
grieve another; rather suffer affliction than that you should
afflict another; rather be reproached, than that you should
reproach another; rather be slandered, than that you should
slander another; rather be robbed, than that you should rob
another; rather be beaten, than that you should beat another,
and so 'forth.</p>

<p>Behold, my most beloved, all this is wrought through
brotherly love, and is all comprehended in the second
commandment; hence, you must constantly see that you do not
seek solely your own profit, but always care for those with
whom you have dealings, whether they be young or old.</p>

<p>Further, my dear children, Betgen and Tanneken, my beloved
lambs, I admonish you in all these same things, as that you
obey the commandments of the Lord, and also obey your uncle and
aunt, and your elders, and all who instruct you in virtue. To
those whose bread you eat, you must be subject in all that is
not contrary to God. Always diligently admonish yourselves to
do your work, and you will be loved wherever you live. Be not
quarrelsome, or loquacious, or light minded, or proud, or surly
of speech, but kind, honorable and quiet, as behooves young
girls. Pray the Lord for wisdom, and it shall be given you.
Diligently learn to read and write, and take delight therein,
and you will become wise. Take pleasure and engage in psalms,
hymns and spiritual songs. Seek for the only joy. Learn to
please the Lord from your youth, as did the holy women and virgins, as Judith. Judith
8.</p>

<p>Esther also was a virgin who feared God; she was adorned
with humility, was gracious, honorable, kind, and humble of
heart; hence she pleased King Ahasuerus above all the other
virgins. Esther 2:17. But in her high estate she was not proud;
though she shone in royal apparel, she humbled her heart, with
fasting and prayer to the Lord, for her brethren, that they
might be delivered out of the hands of their enemies; she did
not esteem herself better than one of the least of her
brethren.</p>

<p>See, my most beloved, when you have attained the years of
understanding, see that you adorn yourselves with good works,
namely, the works of the Spirit, that is, with all manner of
goodness, gentleness, meekness, humility, obedience, long
suffering, righteousness, modesty, honorableness, purity,
peaceableness, steadfastness, mercifulness, wisdom, diligence
in good works, faith, hope and love; to love God above all that
is in the world, and to do to your neighbor as you would have
men do unto you, on which hang all the law and the prophets.
Gal. 5:22, 23; Matt. 22:37, 40.</p>

<p>Behold, my dear children, this is the adornment of the
saints, etc.</p>

<p>O my most beloved, labor for such a wedding garment, so that
you may enter in among the number of the children of God to the
marriage of the Lamb, where they shall shine forth as the sun
in the kingdom of their Father. Rev. 19:7; Matthew 13:43.</p>

<p>May the strong hand of the Lord bring you to this; may He
lead you as He led Israel out of Egypt, and bring you to the
New Jerusalem, that we may see each other with joy in the day
of the resurrection.</p>

<p>Herewith I commend you to the Lord, the God of Abraham, the
God of Isaac, and the God of Jacob; may He keep you to the end
of your lives. Amen.</p>

<p>My dear children, this I leave you as a memorial or
testament. If you put it to good use, you will gather more
treasure by it, than if I had left you many riches, which are
perishable; for the riches of this world may be lost through
fire, war, or misfortune.</p>

<p>Hence, he is not wise who sets his heart upon anything that
is perishable, since we have no assurance of it for an hour; we
must leave it all behind; therefore, grieve not, though what we
had is scattered or lost, as the prophet says, "We are a prey to
every one." Isa. 59:15. Hence you are to thank the Lord yet,
that He let us have it until I have brought you up so far: and
if you walk in all righteousness, the Lord will give you
enough. Take an example from Tobias. Tob. 4:19. David also says
that the righteous shall not want, nor his seed go begging
bread. Ps. 37:25.</p>

<p>Therefore covet no one's property or treasures; nor envy any
one because he has more than you. Neither regard any person for
his gifts. but follow</p>

</div><div id="651"> 

<p>the little flock, who walk truly in love; for love is the
bond of perfectness, and the command of love is superior to all
others. Luke 12:32; Col. 3:14. Therefore; see constantly that
you follow those who walk most in love; for the tree is known
by its fruit, though these are hid from all men; .but Christ
was too, and the servant is not better than his lord. Matt.
10:24.</p>

<p>Herewith I will bid you adieu: adieu my dear children, and
adieu all my dear friends.</p>

<p>My most beloved, though our adversaries tell you, that your
father and I are not of the same faith, do not believe them;
for he confessed the truth concerning baptism and the
incarnation, of Christ, in all that he was able to comprehend,
and he valiantly testified to righteousness, giving his life
for it, pointing out to you for an example, the same way which
the prophets, the apostles and Christ Himself went. He had to
go before through the conflict with much tribulation and
suffering, and leave his children behind for Christ's sake;
hence do likewise, for there is no other way.* Give diligence
to read the Testament. Amen.</p>

<h2>A LETTER OF SOETGEN VAN DEN HOUTE TO HER BROTHER AND SISTER, AS ALSO TO HER CHILDREN</h2> 

<p class="c25">Written out of love:</p>

<p>The peace of the Lord be with you; my dear brother and
sister, know that I have received two letters, with their
contents, and I thank you most cordially for all the friendship
you have ever shown me, and shall yet show me, I hope, in my
three lambs whom I leave behind, commending them to the Lord
and to those whore He shall direct thereto in His grace.</p>

<p>Herewith I take leave once more; I think it is now the last
time. We are of such good cheer to offer up our sacrifice that
I cannot express it. I could leap for joy when I think of the
eternal riches which are promised to us as our inheritance, and
to all who persevere in what the Lord has commanded us. Matt.
10:22.</p>

<p>I know not how I shall praise the Lord that He has chosen
Martha and myself ,to this estate, its who are such poor,
simple lambs, for we have. never been esteemed in the world,
except as outasts; and that God has chosen such rejected,
miserable, simple worms of the dust, that He will work through
us, that we should be His witnesses, we who are not worthy of
ourselves to receive the very least gift which the Lord might
bestow, etc.</p>

<p>Oh, who can comprehend the power of God, that He should be
most merciful to those who are here the most rejected, if they
call upon Him with confidence and firmly place their hope in
His grace unto the end; it were impossible that the Lord should
reject them. Hence I pray all that love the, " From what is related here, it appears that also Soetgen .
van den Houte's husband died for the truth, as a valiant
witness of Jesus; although we have not been able to learn the
time, place and manner of his death.</p>

<p>Lord, that they humble their hearts, for the Lord says
through the prophet Isaiah"I will dwell with him that is of a
contrite Spirit, and of a broken heart, and trembleth at my
word." Isa. 57; 66:2.</p>

<p>Yea, those who thus humble themselves before the Lord, and
do not think themselves to be something before God, and before
men, them shall God exalt and enrich with heavenly riches.
Matt. 23:12. Remember how Christ chose humility, when He left
the glory of His Father and descended into the lower parts of
the earth. From obedience to His Father, and out of great love
He became man; with great humility He came to serve us,
suffered pain and reproach, enduring it with patience and
longsuffering, out of obedience to His Father, even unto death,
until He had finished all, so that He might save us. Phil. 2:8.
Oh, what love did He show us by His anxiety and sighing, when
He said, according to His humanity, "How am I straightened till
it be accomplished!" Luke 12:50.</p>

<p><i>O my</i> most beloved, consider our Leader, Jesus Christ,
how He regarded the humility of Mary, that He would be born of
her. And though she was chosen to such a high estate, she
humbled herself, saying:,"Behold the handmaid of the Lord. For
God bath regarded the low estate of his handmaiden; therefore,
henceforth all generations shall call me blessed. For his mercy
is on them that fear him from generation to generation; for he
bath scattered the proud. He bath put down the mighty from
their seats, and exalted them of low degree. He bath filled the
hungry with good things, and the rich bath he sent empty away.
To the poor the gospel is. preached. Blessed are they which do
hunger and thirst after righteousness; for they shall be
filled." Luke 1:38, 48; etc.; 7:22; Matt. 5:6.</p>

<p>O my dearest, my heartfelt desire and request is, for the
last time, that you give diligence to walk in love, simplicity,
and harmony among yourselves, always in the fear of God, that
you may be filled with the heavenly good things, and satisfied
now and forever. Amen.</p>

<p>Herewith I commend you to. the Lord, and to the Word of His
grace. May He comfort, strengthen, stablish you all with His
Spirit, that you <i>may</i> finish that whereunto you are
called, to the praise and glory of the Lord, so that you may
rejoice together, and set down at the Lord's table, where lie
shall serve us with new wine, in the kingdom of God, His
Father.</p>

<p>This was written when we had eaten our last supper, as far
as we know. Herewith I 'bid adieu to all my brethren and
sisters. I and Martha, my sister in the Lord, salute you much
with the peace of the Lord, for the last time all who are known
to us or not, wherever they be. We rejoice in the Lord, we bid
adieu till we meet above, in the New Jerusalem. Heb. 12:22.</p>

<p>Read this last farewell to all who desire to hear it, before
you send it away; and then send it to my sister Betgen.</p>

</div><div id="652"> 

<p>Further; my dear child Betgen, I rejoice greatly that the
Lord spared me so long, that I was made glad before my death
through your letter, by which you have strengthened me. I pray
the Lord to strengthen and confirm you with His Spirit, that
you may go on thus, and follow that which is best, as you wrote
to me.</p>

<p>O my dear lambs, see that you do not spend your youth in
vanity, or pride, or drinking, or gluttony, but in sobriety and
humility in the fear of God, and diligence in every good work,
that you may be clothed with the adornment of the saints, so
that God may make you worthy through His grace, to enter in to
the marriage of the Lamb, and that we may see you there with
joy. Your father and I, and many others, have shown you the
way. Take an example from the prophets and apostles, yea,
Christ Himself, who all went this way; and where the head has
gone before, there the members must certainly follow.</p>

<p>Herewith I will commend you to the Lord, and to the Word of
His grace. This is my last farewell, my dear lambs; always
remember each other in love; diligently learn to read and
write, and obey everyone in that which is good. When your
brother David and Tanneken come to you, greet one another with
a friendly kiss of peace, in my name.</p>

<p>Herewith I bid you adieu, my dear child Betgen; adieu, my
dear children David and Tanneken; adieu, all my dear brethren
and sisters, and friends everywhere.</p>

<p>Once more we say adieu; greet uncle and aunt much with the
kiss of peace, in my name.</p>

<p>Written by me Soetgen van den Houte, your mother in bonds;
written in haste (while trembling with cold), out of love for
you all. Amen.</p>

<h2>JOOST JOOSTEN, BURNT AT VEER, IN ZEALAND, A. D. 1560</h2> 

<p>It occurred in the year 1560, that at Veer, in Zealand,
there was apprehended a young brother named Joost Joosten, a
native of Goes, a small town in Zealand, who was considerably
versed in the Latin language. When he was a student of about
fourteen years, it happened that King Philip was in Zealand.
and that this Joost Joosten was singing choral in church, in
the organ loft, as is customary in papistic churches. The king
was so delighted with the lad's singing, that he wanted to take
him with him to Spain; on which account Joost kept himself
concealed for six weeks, as he did not want to go away. Thus,
he afterwards became converted to the true faith, and
consequently, was baptized upon his faith, and thus led a
C'.ristian life. This the enemies of the truth could not
endure; hence they apprehended him when he was eighteen vears
old. He had to suffer many assaults, and divers times attempts
were made to draw him from the faith. He disputed with four
inquisitors concerning many articles of faith; they made strenuous efforts to draw him over to their
religion. When they could not move him with such means, they
tortured him dreadfully, especially with instruments called
iron <i>teerlingen,</i> which they thrust into his knees so
that they came out again at-the ankles. But all this he
steadfastly endured with great patience, and faithfully kept
the treasure which he had in an earthen vessel. Hence the
children of Herod sentenced him to death by burning; which they
executed on him on a Monday before Christmas. On his way to
death he rejoiced greatly in the Lord, and sang yet as he was
going into the but of straw in which he was burnt, the last
verse of the hymn composed by himself, which begins thus, "O
Lord, thou art forever in my thoughts." He also wrote a
confession of faith, of five sheets of paper, which, however,
through course of time has been lost.</p>

<p><i>KOOLAERT, THE COOPER, A. D.</i> 1561</p>

<p>At Honschote, in Flanders, there was apprehended for the
truth, in the year 1561, a brother named Koolaert the cooper,
who, after freely confessing his faith, was taken to
Wijnoxberge, and as he also there, notwithstanding the tortures
inflicted upon him, would depart neither to the right nor to
the left, he was sentenced to death, and burnt alive, about St.
Martin's Day, for the testimony of our Lord Jesus Christ.</p>

<p><i>JOOS VERBEECK, A. D.</i> 1561</p>

<p>On the 7th of June 1561 the margrave of Antwerp went out
with a large retinue, well armed with sticks and staves, and
they apprehended Joos Verbeeck, a minister of the Word of God
and of His church. On the 9th he was examined; he confessed his
faith very freely, as also his ministry; of which the margrave
and the lords made much sport. He was also very severely
tortured; but God kept his lips in everything, so that he
inculpated no one. Although he was treated so unmercifully that
a rope broke in two on his body, and that in four days he had
to go to the rack twice, and was once scourged till his blood
flowed, he bore all patiently; this, however, he greatly
lamented, namely, that they had broken, or lamed by torturing,
his right hand, and thus disabled him from writing.</p>

<p>On the 20th day of the month he was brought into court,
where the bailiff asked him whether he was rebaptized. He
answered, "Ask me for my faith, which I confessed in prison
before the lords and the margrave." The bailiff then asked him
what he thought of infant baptism. He said, "I confessed that it
is not of God, but a human institution." The bailiff asked
again whether he was rebaptized, and said, "Say yes or no; for I
know you will not lie; therefore, tell me the truth." He
said, "I was baptized upon my faith, as Christ teaches." Matt.
28, Mark 16.</p>

</div><div id="653"> 

<p>Having confessed <i>his</i> faith, baptism and doctrine, he
could not well say much more. The lords concluded his sentence,
he, in the meantime saying to the people, "Dear citizens, I have
lived here eleven years, and no one can complain of me, since I
have never wronged any one, and my life and doctrine agree with
the Word of God.""That is true," exclaimed -a brother: upon
hearing which, the thief catchers arose and searched for his
brother; but did not find him.</p>

<p>Joos said, "Oh, that I might publicly defend myself against
the priests who came to me in prison; as Paul could do before
Agrippa; but we are forbidden to speak." Acts 26:2.</p>

<p>Coming out of the court, he said, "He that delivered Daniel
out of the den of lions, will also preserve me; for what I
suffer is for the name of the Lord, and not for
evil-doing.", "That is true," cried a brother; and others cried, "Fight
valiantly, dear brother." Joos boldly and cheerfully said, "Dear
citizens, thus must all the children of God suffer; this way
was trod by the saints of God, the prophets, and so many pious
men."</p>

<p>When he approached the little house, yea, stood before the
door of the but in which he was to offer up his burnt
sacrifice, he cast <i>his</i> eyes up to heaven, saying, "O holy
Father, assist Thy servant in this extremity." The
executioner's servant wanted to thrust a gag into his mouth, to
prevent him from speaking; but he did nevertheless not keep
silence, for he was heard to exclaim, "O Lord, Thou Son of
David, have compassion upon me."</p>

<p>The executioner performed his task, trembling with fear.
When the fire was kindled, Joos cried, "O heavenly Father, into
Thy hands I commit my spirit. O Lord of hosts, who didst
separate me from my mother's womb, succor Thy servant in this
last extremity, since I suffer for Thy name." Jeremiah 1:5;
Gal. 1:15. Once more he cried, "O heavenly Father, into Thy
hands I commend my spirit." And with this, he quietly offered
up a fiery sacrifice, for an example and pattern to us all.</p>

<h2>A BRIEF LETTER FROM JOOS VERBEECK, WRITTEN IN PRISON AT ANTWERP, TO HIS WIFE</h2> 

<p>Grace and mercy from God our heavenly Father, and our Lord
Jesus Christ, be to my dear wife and sister in the Lord, for an
affectionate greeting, all the days of your life, in the true
earnestness of the Holy Ghost. Amen.</p>

<p>I greet you and all my five children most affectionately.
Bring them up in the nurture of the Lord, and behave yourself
as becomes holy women, in order to teach the young women to be
sober, to love their husbands, to be discreet, chaste, and
obedient to their husbands; and firmly persevere in the same
rule in which you stand. Eph. 6:4; Tit. 2:2.</p>

<p>May the Lord fit you for every good work that becomes your
calling. Herewith I commend you to Almighty God, and to the Word of His grace; may He grant
that we may see each other in eternity.</p>

<p>By the, Joos Verbeeck, your husband, and broth er in the
Lord; written at Antwerp in prison where I am confined for the
testimony of Jesus Christ-with my left hand, with great
trouble, as my right hand has been tortured lame.</p>

<p>Greet all the friends, especially the ministers.</p>

<h2>JULIUS KLAMPHERER, A. D. .1561</h2> 

<p>In the year 1561, Brother Julius Klampherer, from Italy was
imprisoned at Venice, for his faith and the divine truth. Again
and again they arraigned and examined him, and disputed with
him, to cause him to apostatize; but he always defended himself
wisely: He was permitted to put in writing that which he
discussed, concerning his faith, with the papistic commissaries
appointed for this purpose, and thus to defend himself, and
give an account of his faith in his own handwriting. When he
had done this, and steadfastly adhered to it, they finally
sentenced him to be cast into the depth of the sea; whereupon
he answered and said, "This is nothing strange to me, for it was
told me in the beginning of my conversion, that I must expect
to die for the testimony of the truth; but it does seem strange
to me, that the lords of Venice concur in such a purpose, and
do not consider or weigh, that at the last day they will have
to give an account before God, for innocent blood."</p>

<p>Thereupon they replied to him, that they did not ask him
concerning this. And as they did not relish what he said, they
did not allow him to say anything further, but hurriedly
remanded him to prison.</p>

<p>And being resolved to execute the sentence which they had
pronounced, and to proceed with it, they, according to their
custom, since he had been a priest, desecrated him, and then,
in the dusk of an evening, under the pretense of leading him
before the lord, took him out and unexpectedly cast him into
the depth of the sea, and drowned him. However, he had expected
nothing else; hence he was joyful, and constantly sang and
praised God with a glad and valiant heart, until he obtained
the crown of the pious martyrs and faithful witnesses of Jesus
Christ. And though they drowned him secretly by night, yet it
will be revealed at the great day of the Lord, and severely
avenged.</p>

 
<h1>LAUWERENS VAN DE WALLE, ANTONIS SCHOON VELT, KALLEKEN STRINGS, AND MAEYKEN KOCX, A. D. 1561</h1>

<p>In the year 1561 several brethren and sisters, after
suffering much persecution, took up residence near Ypres in
Flanders, at a place called <i>ten Hoogensiecken.</i> Having
left money, property, friends and kindred, to follow Christ,
and live there in quietness, engaging in tape-weaving, in order
to</p>

</div><div id="654"> 

<p>gain a living by their trade, they were spied out while they
sat and worked together, and the inquisitor came to apprehend
them. He was accompanied by a large force well provided with
sticks, swords and ropes, and they arrived just at the time
when Antonis, who had made them a visit, and had taken leave,
stood at the door, ready to go.</p>

<p>As they thus arrived with great noise, Stijntgen Potvliets
(who was pregnant) ran out of the house first, and was
apprehended. Karel N. also ran out at the door, and master
Klaas (who was a great persecutor, and fellow helper of the
inquisitor) pursued him, struck at him with a bare sword, and
though Karel was wounded by it, yet he escaped. Maeyken Kocx
(who was also pregnant) was attacked by the inquisitor, who
held a naked sword in his hand, and as she cried aloud to him
to spare her child, and he acted in a very bloodthirsty manner,
he, like a madman, wounded himself.</p>

<p>Lauwerens van de Walle, Antonis Schoonvelt, and Kalleken
Strings were also apprehended, but Hendrick N. made his
escape.</p>

<p>While they were being bound, they comforted one another much
with the Word of God, and when they were brought out of the
house, they cheerfully spoke to the neighbors, saying, "Can any
one complain of us? It is for the name of Christ that this is
inflicted upon us; we need not be ashamed of it." Matt. 10:22;
I Pet. 4:16.</p>

<p>On their way to town, Kalleken commenced to sing a hymn.
Then said master Klaas, "The apostles did not sing, as you do;
nor do I want to dance; why then do you sing?" Antonis said, "Sister, do not fear these; just sing as much as you. want
to;" and Lauwerens helped her sing. When they came into the
city, there was a great concourse of people, and they made
known the Word of God by singing and speaking. Among other
things, Lauwerens said, "That we are apprehended, is not on
account of evil doing, but because we live according to the
word of God."</p>

<p>Kalleken Strings said, "Strait is the gate, and narrow is the
way, which leadeth unto life (Matthew 7:14); repair to it, do
good and forsake evil, and fear not the rulers of this world,
but buy Testaments, read therein the counsel of God, and follow
it." They were then confined in the court of the prison, .where
they remained for several months and days, patient and of good
cheer, waiting until they should offer up their sacrifice, and
being visited and comforted in the meantime by many brethren
and sisters. They were also sometimes examined in regard to
their faith, which they freely confessed, and from which no
pain or suffering could induce them to depart.</p>

<p>Finally, having suffered many tortures, on the rack as well
as elsewhere, Lauwerens van de Walle, Antonis Schoonvelt, and
Kalleken Strings, as they adhered valiantly and steadfastly to
the truth, were delivered by the inquisitor into the hands of
the secular authorities, to be dealt with according to the
import of the royal decree. In delivering them, the inquisitor
also, in the hearing of the ignorant people, read severe
charges (as he thought) against them, as, among other things,
that they confessed the Pope of Rome to be the antichrist. I
John 2:18. That they held the Roman church to be the whore of
Babylon. Rev. 17:5. That they pronounced the sacrament to be an
abominable idol, etc.</p>

<p>Thereupon Lauwerens commenced to say that he had not said or
confessed this without a fuller explanation. He was instantly
and savagely told to keep silence, but he said, "Thieves and
murderers are allowed to have some one who speaks for them; but
you have brought it about that neither a procurator nor an
advocate may speak for us; hence we must speak for
ourselves."</p>

<p>Kalleken Strings also, who sat there with her head resting
on her hand, exhausted from excessive torture, let her voice be
heard boldly.</p>

<p>On the testimony of the inquisitor, Lauwerens van de Walle
and Antonis Schoonvelt were both sentenced by the authorities,
to be publicly strangled and burnt at the stake, and to this
end a scaffold with two stakes, as also wood and straw, was
prepared in the marketplace.</p>

<p>They were brought out with their arms tied together, and
coming to the place where they were to be offered up, they fell
down upon their knees, and prayed to God. When they had arisen,
the executioner asked their forgiveness for what he was about
to do, and they kindly forgave him, according to the teaching
of Christ. Matt. 6:14.</p>

<p>Lauwerens said with a loud voice to the authorities, that of
a truth he would gladly forgive them and all who were guilty in
the matter. He also boldly said, like the third of the
Maccabean brethren, "These limbs God from heaven gave; therefore
I will willingly surrender them for His law's sake." II Macc.
7:11. As they went into the but, both cried farewell to all the
brethren and sisters scattered in many countries, cities and
villages, and with this commending their spirits into the hands
of God, they departed this world.</p>

<p>In the month of October of the same year, also Kalleken
Strings, a very fine and well-bred maiden, was delivered to the
secular authorities. She was modest, fearless and steadfast, so
that neither many fair promises of riches and money, or
temporal prosperity, nor pain or severe torments (though she
was tortured to such an extent, that she was taken from the
rack for dead), could in any wise draw her from her faith; yea,
even her mother, when she visited her in prison for this end,
could not move her; nor accomplish her purpose, but hearing and
seeing her daughter's steadfastness and kind treatment of her,
she said, "My daughter is better than I am."</p>

<p>Afterwards she was also sentenced to be strangled and burnt;
whereupon she said, "You have now sentenced me to the fire-
accordinv to the Em-</p>

</div><div id="655"> 

<p>peror's decree; fear the judgment of God, which fie shall
hold, to condemn you to eternal fire.</p>

<p>When it was thought that Kalleken was about to be. executed,
a great multitude of people flocked together from far and near,
to see it. Seeing this, and fearing a disturbance, the
authorities did not have her brought forth; only the
executioner came out of the city hall, and said to the people,.
that she was dead already. Thus, the people went away, thinking
that she had been privately beheaded.</p>

<p>But early the next day, and unexpectedly, no scaffold having
been erected, but other preparations made, she was brought into
the marketplace, and when she had offered up her prayer to God,
and commended her spirit into His hands, -sentence was executed
on her, and thus she departed this world, going with a burning
lamp to meet her bridegroom. Matt. 25:1.</p>

<p>In the meantime, Stijntgen Potvliets, not continuing
steadfast, was set at liberty; but Maeyken Kocx, who remained
immovable, was retained and kept until she was delivered of her
child, and was out of childbed, whereupon (though her heart
clung dearly to her husband and children, yet loving God above
all, and, out of love to Him, adhering to the.truth known and
accepted, esteeming this precious treasure of greater value
than her own life) she was sentenced to be publicly strangled
and burned at the stake, which was also executed. Commending
her spirit into the hands of God, she joyfully departed this
world, well knowing that she should inherit eternal joy, and be
permitted to enter in with the five wise virgins, when the cry
shall be made at midnight, "Behold, the bridegroom cometh; go ye
out to meet him."</p>

<h2>ORVEL, JAN AND PLEUNIS, A. D. 1561</h2> 

<p>About this time Orvel, Jan and Pleun were severally
apprehended for the truth; at Cologne, and as they steadfastly
confessed the truth, and could not be moved by any kind of
torture or crafty seduction, but remained faithful, they were
finally taken out on the Rhine, and drowned, having commended
their souls into the hands of God, in the year 1561.</p>

<h2>FRANCHOYS VAN ELSTLANDT, A. D. 1561</h2> 

<p>A brother, Franchoys van Elstlandt, also called France van
Meenene; a mason by trade, went from Meenene to Arien in French
Flanders; to work at his trade there, and thus earn his living.
There, on St. Denis' day, the ninth of October, 1561, just as
he was leading a horse to water for the master for whom he
worked, he was apprehended, because he did no 'longer worship
the priest's idol, and when he, after many solicitations,
threats, and much suffering, would not renounce his faith, he
was finally, on the. 21st of October, burnt alive, as a witness
of God. On this occasion, a monk shamelessly cried, "Go thou
accursed, from this into the eternal fire." But Franchoys bore it with patience,
committing vengeance unto God, who will judge righteously in
due time.</p>

<h2>JOHN SCHUT, A. D. 1561</h2> 

<p>In the year 1561 another valiant hero and soldier of Jesus
Christ, named John Schut, fell into the hands of the tyrants
and persecutors, for following Christ, and living according to
God's holy Word, in the city of Vreden, in Westphalia. There he
suffered and, through the grace of God, endured, severe
imprisonment and threats of death. When brought bound before
the lords, to give an account of his faith, he freely confessed
the same, saying that he believed according to the Word of
God</p>

<p>1. They asked him. concerning his baptism, and what he held
in regad to infant baptism. He replied that he was baptized
upon his faith, as Christ his faithful Saviour has commanded us
in Mark 16, that baptism is to be given only to believers, and
not to ignorant children, and that he had never read of infant
baptism in the holy Scriptures, and that it could therefore by
no means be proved with the Word of God, but that baptism
belonged only to those who had amended their sinful life. They
angrily asked him, whether he would not give up these views. He
answered that it were by no means expedient for him, 'to
forsake the Word of God, and die an eternal death, but that he
would rather suffer for the truth; though the pain should be as
great again.</p>

<p>2. In regard to the Lord's Supper, he also thoroughly
confessed before them that it must be observed according to the
institution .of Christ, and that we must by it remember, with
an humble heart, His bitter sufferings and innocent death, and
how He shed His precious blood on the cross for us poor
sinners.</p>

<p>3. They all asked him with many words, whether Christ our
Saviour was not of Mary's flesh and blood. But as this point is
a principal article of our Christian faith, he likewise
answered thoroughly upon it; saying that he had never read this
assertion of theirs in the Word of God. He asked them, "How could He be of the earth whom God the Father sent down
from heaven? But He was conceived of the Holy Ghost by the pure
virgin Mary, and became man through the effectual power of the
Most High, so that the holy thing which was born of her is
called the Son of the most high God, without partaking in the
'least or most of man's polluted or sinful flesh. But the Word,
according to the testimony of John, became flesh or man, so
that the glory of the only begotten Son of the Father was
handled and seen. Thereby the promises of God concerning His
proceeding from the seed of David, are completely fulfilled in
Christ, through whom we all who were lost have been redeemed
and reconciled to God.</p>

<p>4. They asked him concerning their magistracy, whether they
were not of God. He replied, "Yes,</p>

</div><div id="656"> 

<p>for the protection of the pious, and the punishment of
evil-doers; they are ordained of God to rule their dominions in
peace."</p>

<p>5. They asked him what he held in regard to marriage. He
replied that a man and a woman are united together in marriage,
and that such union may riot be dissolved, save on account of
adultery; following herein the teaching of Christ. Matt.
19.</p>

<p>6. They asked him concerning uproar and sedition. But he
answered that he did not approve of such evil things; but that
he and his fellow brethren, on the contrary, were taught to
love their enemies, and to do good to them that do us evil and
persecute us. And that with truth nothing else should ever be
heard of him and his fellow brethren.</p>

<p>7. They asked him who his captain was. He replied that it
was Christ with His doctrine, who had called him in peace. And
to this his faithful Saviour, and his blessed doctrine he hoped
to adhere, and to confirm it with his death and blood.</p>

<p>Thereupon he was sentenced by these tyrants, and executed
with the sword. The chief judge who had passed this sentence,
riding by the body of John Schut, a few days after his
execution, called out mockingly, "Schut, sing us a song;" for
Schut had been cheerful in his tribulation, and sung much in
prison and on his way to death. Upon this the judge was struck
with apoplexy, and never spoke again, but died in a short time;
which by many was looked upon as the vengeance and punishment
of God upon him.</p>

<p>Concerning this account, read his own hymn, in the old hymn
book; it begins: <i>"O Heer ick magh wel klagen."</i></p>

<h2>JAN, HENDRICK, BASTIAEN, FANS, MARIKEN VAN MEENEN, BEETKEN VAN BRUGH, AND LIJNTGEN, THE 15TH OF AUGUST, A. D. 1561</h2> 

<p>A. D. 1561, there were imprisoned at Antwerp in Brabant, for
the testimony of Jesus, seven pious witnesses of the truth,
named Jan, Hendrick, Bastiaen, Hans, Mariken van Meenen,
Beetken van Brugh and Lijntgen. All these had the house of
their faith built so firmly and immovably upon their head and
cornerstone Christ Jesus, that neither the philosophy and
crafty seduction, nor the tyranny and violence of the papists
could in any wise bring them to apostatize, but their faith was
found much more precious than gold that erisheth, though it be
tried with fire (I Pet. 1 ); so that they, on the 15th of
August of said year, at said place surrendered their lives for
the truth, and obtained the end of their faith, eternal
salvation, through the grace of God, and are waiting now to
receive, together with all the pious, the crown of everlasting
glory, in eternity.</p>

<p>Read, concerning this, the beautiful long hymn composed for
the comforting of these prisoners, and dedicated to them, in
the second hymn book. It begins: <i>"Lieve breeders wy groeten a met sang</i>cn."</p>

<h2>TWELVE CHRISTIANS AT BRUGES: ADRIAEN BRAEL, LUCAS HENDRICKS, MARIJN AMARE, NIKASEN AMARE, HANSKEN LISZ, ANDRIES DE MEULENAER, ANTHONIS KEUTE, HANSKEN PARMENTI$R, JAN N., JELIS OUTERMAN, FRANCIJNTGEN MEULENAERS, MAEYKEN TRAMS, IN THE YEAR 1561</h2> 

<p>In the year 1561, on the evening before St. Martin's day,
some Christians were assembled together, at Bruges, in
Flanders, who instructed one another with the Word of the Lord,
concerning the amendment of life. When the lords learned of
this, they sent thither the servants of the bailiff, who came
running in, and cried, "Surrender, or we will run you through;
and deliver up all your arms and books." They replied, "We are
not a people who seek to avenge themselves; but we leave
vengeance to God, who will avenge it in due time." They were
then fettered, two and two together, and taken to prison; they
walked on boldly, comforting one another with the Word of God.
Three escaped, namely, Rutsaert, and his wife, and one named
Maeyken; but the others who were imprisoned were joyful.
Francijntjen Meulenaers said to Maeyken, "Dear sister, let us
remember that the kingdom of heaven is .nigh, and let us be
sincerely faithful to our Bridegroom."</p>

<p>Jelis and Hansken Parmentier each sang a hymn for joy. On
St. Martin's day they were brought before the lords, where they
boldly confessed their faith, as also, that they had been,
baptized aright according to the command of Christ.</p>

<p>These ten brethren and two sisters remained in prison for
about thirty days, where they praised and thanked God, and
prepared themselves to suffer for His name. During this' time
they were once more brought before the lords, where they again
confessed their faith, and said that they would firmly adhere
to it.</p>

<p>Afterwards, on the 10th of December, six of them were
offered up, namely Adrian Brael, Lucas Hendricks, Marijn Amare,
Nikasen Amare, Hansken Lisz, and Andries Meulenaer, who, boldly
comforting one another, said, among other things, "Now the fight
is fought, the course almost finished, the faith kept, and
henceforth, as Paul says, the crown 9f life .is prepared for
us." I Tim: 4:7, 8; Jas. 1:12.</p>

<p>The following day, the llth of December, the other six were
put to death, namely, Teunis Keute, Hansken Parmentier, Jan,
Jells Outerman, Francijntgen Meulenaers, Maeyken Trams,
who.also boldly and joyfully, with ,their lamps, and adorned
with their wedding garments, went to meet their. Bridegroom,
with such great love that for His sake they did not fear
bitter, death. Francij'ntgen called to one of her acquaitances,
enjoining her cordially to greet the brethren and sisters in
the</p>

</div><div id="657"> 

<p>Lord, and to tell them that she so gladly suffered for the
name of the Lord, and would boldly fight, together with her
Bridegroom.</p>

<p>Thus all these, the first as well as the last six, were
strangled and burnt for the name of God and His truth. They are
now at rest, and wait for the coming of our Lord, who will
avenge their sufferings.</p>

<h2>JAN HULLE, AT YPRES, A. D. 1561</h2> 

<p>As it is found that the wolf will generally follow his
innate ravenous nature, and therefore the sheep can make no
firm compact with him, but stand in constant danger of being
devoured by him, so it appeared in the year 1561 in the city of
Ypres, in Flanders, where a God-fearing lamb of Jesus Christ,
namely, an old man named Jan Hulle, was seized and apprehended
by these devouring wolves. He there had to undergo and endure
many severe conflicts with them, not on account of any crime,
but only for living according to the Word of God, from which
they by tyranny sought to draw him and make him apostatize. But
as he, as behooves an obedient follower of Jesus Christ, had
yielded himself under the voice of his only Shepherd, he fled
from these strangers, and would not hear them. On this account
he was condemned to death by the lords of this world, and was
thus burnt at said place. In all this he, as a valiant soldier
of Jesus Christ, armed himself with patience, and, through
faith, steadfastly endured all these sufferings inflicted upon
him. And as he herein was not ashamed of Christ and His truth
but openly confessed Him before lords and princes, and
testified and confirmed it with his death and blood; therefore
Christ, when He comes in the clouds of heaven, in the glory of
His Father, will not be ashamed of him, but confess him before
His Father, and set him on His right hand, and bid him with all
the blessed to enter into the kingdom prepared for them from
the beginning, that is, into the eternal glory of heaven.</p>

<h2>PIETER VAN MALDEGEM, PIETER VAN MALE, JACQUES BOSTIJN, AND LAUWERENS ALLAERTS, A. D. 1562</h2> 

<p>In the year 1562 four brethren, named Pieter van Maldegem,
Pieter van Male, Jacques Bostijn, and Lauwerens Allaerts, were
apprehended at Ghent, in Flanders, because they no longer
sought to follow the Roman church, but the commandments of God.
When they were examined, they freely confessed their faith, and
valiantly contended for the truth, with the spiritual sword of
the Word of God; and as they in no wise could be moved
therefrom, they were sentenced to death, and had to testify
with their blood to the name'of Christ. They now rest under the
altar, and wait until the number of their brethren be
fulfilled, that they may be rewarded, and vengeance taken on
their enemies.</p>

<h2>VIJNTGEN, GOUDEKEN, AND JANNEKEN DE JONKHEER, BETGEN VAN MALDEGEM, AND SIJNTGEN VAN GELDER, A. D. 1562</h2> 

<p>In the same year there were also apprehended at Ghent three
sisters, namely Vijntgen, Goudeken, and Janneken de Jonkheer,
and two others, namely, Betgen van Maldegem, and Sijntgen van
Gelder. All five freely confessed their faith, and undauntedly
adhered to it unto death-which they had to suffer for it-and
firmly clung to the love of their Bridegroom Jesus Christ.
Hence they shall also, when the cry is made at midnight, go to
meet Him with their burning lamps, and with oil in their
adorned vessels, and shall, as ready virgins, go in with Him to
the marriage of the Lamb.</p>

<h2>GULJAME VAN DALE, A. D. 1562</h2> 

<p>Shortly after, also an imprisoned brother named Guljame van
Dale, who adhered so firmly to the truth and love of God that
he feared no pain, suffering, fire or sword, had, for following
Christ (whom he thanked that he had made them worthy for it),
to taste bitter death, at Ghent. Hence Christ shall exalt him,
and give him to inherit His eternal kingdom of heaven full of
imperishable joy.</p>

<h2>JELIS STRINGS, WITH PIETER AND JELIS
POTVLIET, A. D. 1562</h2> 

<p>Jelis Strings, a thoughtful young single man, and a man
named Pieter Potvliet, with his brother Jelis Potvliet, a young
man, all three natives of Tielt, in Flanders, having come to
the knowledge of the divine truth, and joined the church of
God, finally, after suffering much persecution, took up
residence at Wervijck, where they supported themselves by tape
weaving. Thus it happened about the middle of the summer of the
year 1562, that one night the inquisitor came with many
servants, surrounded the house, entered the same, and
apprehended these three brethren.</p>

<p>When daylight came, they were put into a wagon, securely
bound, the inquisitor and his company riding alongside on
horseback. They were thus taken through Meenen to Kortrijck, a
distance of about three hours walking, where they remained in
confinement for three months, very closely guarded, and had
many discussions in reference to the faith, with the inquisitor
and other ecclesiastics; but they valiantly and steadfastly
adhered to the truth known and accepted. Hence, the inquisitor
and the lord of Everbeke (in whose dominion they had been
apprehended), and a great company on horseback and on foot,
took these pious witnesses of the truth, in a wagon, back the
same way, to Werwijck, where, in the marketplace, called the
<i>Steenacker,</i> an enclosure had been prepared, together
with stakes and wood, to burn them. But as it had rained
excessively, while they were on the way between Meenen and
Werwijck,</p>

</div><div id="658"> 

<p>so that the wood and straw, prepared for the purpose, had
become very wet, and as the bailiff also was averse to cause
them to be burnt, all three were sentenced to be beheaded.</p>

<p>First Jelis Strings was brought forth, who, as he was going
to death, said, among other things, "Because I believe that
Jesus is the Christ, the Son of the living God, born of the
Virgin Mary, I' must die." Thereupon a monk, who walked at his
side, instantly said, "You lie." Jelis further said, concluding
his remark, "And because I believe that the pope is the
antichrist." Finally, kneeling down, he' said with a trembling
voice, "O heavenly Father, into Thy hands I commend my spirit."
A few moments more, and the executioner had dispatched him, and
covered the dead body with wood, that the others who were to
follow should not see it lie there.</p>

<p>Pieter Potvliet was next brought forth, who, on his way to
death, said, "It has been so before for the name of the Lord."
He also quoted, in confirmation of his faith, from Eph. 4:5,
that there is one Lord, one faith. one baptism, etc. And having
kneeled down, he also exclaimed, "O heavenly Father, into Thy
hands I commend my spirit." The executioner soon wielded his
sword, dealing him five strokes, on shoulder, head and neck,
before he finished his work on him; whereupon he covered the
dead body, as he had done the others.</p>

<p>Jelis Potvliet (still young in years) was the third one
brought forth, who, as he was going to death, quoted, among
other things, the words of Christ, "Fear not them that kill the body," etc. And kneeling down,
he also said, "O heavenly Father, into Thy hands I commend my
spirit"-but before he had fully uttered the last word, his head
was off. Their bodies were placed upon wheels, between Werwijck
and Meenen, but soon after secretly taken down and buried by
some of their fellow believers.</p>

<p>Of Jelis Strings two letters are still extant, which he
wrote while in prison at Kortrijck, and which we have added
here for the gratification of the Christian reader.</p>

<h2>THE FIRST LETTER OF JELIS STRINGS</h2> 

<p>Grace, mercy and peace from God our heavenly Father and the
Lord Jesus Christ, the.Son of the Father, in truth and in love.
May He strengthen and confirm you people, who now have to
suffer persecution for a little while, and may He grant you to
be strengthened with might in the inner man, and that Jesus
Christ may dwell in your hearts by faith, and you be rooted and
grounded in love, so that you may be able to comprehend with
all the saints of God, the height, and depth, and length and
breadth of His mercy, and to rightly walk and remain immovable
therein unto the end of your life; this we wish you all who
love the Lord, for a cordial greeting, dear brethren and
sisters in the Lord.</p>

<p>Further, after all greetings, be pleased to know that we are
tolerably well yet, the Lord be praised forever for His grace.
Pray the Lord for us that He will order it according to His
will. We are of pretty good courage, the Lord be praised.</p>

<p>Further, I earnestly pray you, that you will rightly
instruct the simple in the faith, concerning all things, and
frequently speak of these things in the exhortation, for there
is great need of it. They greatly torment those that are
imprisoned, when they perceive that they are weak, yea, as much
again as them that are sure of their faith. And you that are
weak take it well to heart, and be not ashamed to ask questions
for the benefit of your souls, until you have a good
understanding, before it comes to the test. Take this warning
to heart, for it is such a blessed assurance, if one is sure of
his faith. For Sirach says, "A man whose heart is established is
like a house which is firmly bound and nailed together; it
feareth not though a storm arise." Sir. 22:16. Thus, dear
friends, let us also build upon Christ Jesus; this must be the
foundation, namely, His Word; for Christ Himself says, "He that
heareth my word, and doeth it, I will show whom he is like: He
is like a man who proceeded to build his house; but he digged
deep, and laid the foundation upon the rock: though floods and
rains come against it, it remaineth standing, for it is founded
upon the rock. But he that heareth my word, and doeth it not,
is like unto a foolish man that buildeth his house upon the
sand</p>

<p>when the floods come, or the winds blow, it falleth, and
great is the fall of it." Matt. 7:24-27. Observe friends, He
says, "Great is the fall of it." Hence, dear friends, dig deep,
which, according to my understanding, means, to examine and
take well to heart, so that we may not be found fools; for
James admonishes us to be doers of the Word, and not hearers
only, deceiving our own selves. For if any be a hearer of the
Word, and not a doer, he is like unto a man beholding his
natural face in a glass: for he beholdeth himself, and goeth
his way, and straightway forgetteth what manner of man he was.
But whoso examineth himself in the law of God, and is a doer of
the Word, and not a hearer only, this man shall be blessed.
Jas. 1:2225. Yea, Christ Jesus says Himself, "Blessed are they
that hear the word of God, and keep it." Luke 11:28. ,John
also, admonishes us, "Blessed are they that hear the words of
the prophets, and keep those things which are written
therein."</p>

<p>Behold, dear friends, if we hear His word, and keep it well
in our hearts, we are entitled to all these promises of
blessedness; for it is the true food of the soul, by which all
Christians must be fed, if they are to live; for Christ says
that man lives not by bread alone, but by every word that
proceeds out of the mouth of God. Matt. 4:4. Yea, as the
prophet Jeremiah says, in the 15th chapter, verse 16, "Lord, thy
word sustains me, since I have obtained it; and thy word is the
comfort and joy of my heart." Solomon, also, says, "Every</p>

</div><div id="659"> 

<p>word of God is pure, and they are a shield unto them that
put their trust therein.'.' Prov. 30:5. Therefore, dear
friends, let us always put our trust in God's Word; it will not
deceive us; for John says: These sayings of God are true;
heaven and earth shall pass away, but the words of Cod shall
not pass away. Rev. 19:9. O dear friends, let us heed it well,
for it is what will judge us in the last day; for Christ
says, "I shall not judge you; but the word that I have spoken,
the same shall judge you in the last day." John 12:48. O dear
friends, if it is that which will judge us, then we must well
examine, and constantly prove ourselves, whether our life.
accords with the Word of God; and carefully view ourselves in
it as in a mirror, whether there is nothing condemnable in us;
and if we find aught in us that is unclean, then let us do
according to the counsel of the prophet, who says, "Wash ye,
make you clean; put away the evil of your doings from before
mine eyes; cease to do evil, learn to do well; seek judgment;
relieve the oppressed, judge the fatherless, plead for the
widow. Come now, and let us reason together, saith the Lord:
though your sins be as scarlet, they shall be as white as snow;
though they be red like crimson, they shall be as wool." He
says, "If ye be willing and obedient, ye shall eat the good of
the land: But if ye refuse and rebel, ye shall be devoured with
the sword: for the mouth of the Lord hath spoken it." Isa.
1:16-20.</p>

<p>Dear brethren and sisters, let us not be disobedient, nor
murmur against God, like Israel, who were rejected for it. I
Cor. 10:10. If we have heard His voice today, let us not harden
our hearts, but let us take care that we do not forsake the
promise of entering into His rest, and that none of us be found
to remain without; for we have been sufficiently admonished,
and invited, as was also Israel; but the Word preached them did
not profit them; because they did not firmly believe it.
Hebrews 3:7, 6; 4:2. But let us have a steadfast faith, like
Joshua and Caleb had, who feared neither the great stature of
the Canaanites, nor the strength of their cities, though their
walls reached up to heaven. Num. 14:30. Mark, their walls were
high, and the inhabitants of the land were like giants; they
were only grasshoppers in their sight. But Caleb and Joshua
trusted in God, and, said, "God is with us; their defense is
taken from them; we shall devour them like bread." Num. 14:9:
And by their faith they overcame everything, and entered into
the promised land. Joshua 3:17.</p>

<p>Thus, dear friends; also our enemies are great, strong and
numerous; but if we have a faith like Caleb and Joshua, so that
we do not see our own strength, but go out from ourselves, and
rely upon Him with the whole heart, then we shall cone off
conquerors; for David says, "Commit thy way unto the Lord; trust
also in him; and he sball bring it to pass." Ps. 37:5. Solomon,
too, says, "Trust in the Lord with all thine heart; and lean not unto thine own understanding. In all thy ways
acknowledge him, and he shall direct thy paths." Proverbs
3:5,6. Yea, Paul, also, says, "Let.your conversation be without
covetousness; and be conten with such things as ye have: for he
hath said, I will never leave thee, nor forsake thee. So that
we may boldly say, The Lord is my helper, and I will not fear
what man will do unto me." Heb. 13:5, 6; Deut. 31:6. Yea, David
says, "The Lord is my shepherd; I shall not want. He maketh me
to lie down in green pastures; he leadeth me beside the still
waters. He restoreth my soul: he leadeth me in the paths of
righteousness for his name's sake. .Yea, though I walk through
the valley of the shadow of death, I will fear no evil; for
thou art with me; thy rod and thy staff they comfort me." Ps.
23:1-4.</p>

<p>O dear friends, where do we find such a God in Babylon? He
says, "When thou passest through the waters, I will be with
thee,; and through the rivers, they shall not overflow thee;
when thou walkest through the fire, thou shalt not be burned;
neither shall the flame kindle upon thee." Yea, He says, "The
mountains shall depart, and the hills be removed; but my
kindness shall not depart from thee, neither shall the covenant
of my peace be removed, saith the Lord that hath mercy on
thee." Isa. ,43:2; 54:10. Brethren and sisters, if we have such
a God, who helps thus in time of need, who are we, that, we
should be afraid of men, and of the children of men that must
perish like grass. Isa. 51:12. Yea, Christ Himself said, "Fear not them.that kill the body; but fear him that hath
power to cast soul and body into damnation." Matt. 10:28.
Behold, friends, though the sufferings of Christ abound in us,
so our consolation also aboundeth by Christ. II Cor. 1:5.
Therefore, let us sincerely humble ourselves, and keep His
commandments, and pray before Him with tears, that He will show
us mercy according to His pleasure, so that, as we now have to
mourn on account of their pride, we may rejoice after this
distress, because we do not follow the sins of our fathers,
'who forsook their God, and went after strange gods, wherefore
the Lord delivered them into the hands of their enemies.: I
Pet. 1:6; Deut. 32:16. Therefore, dear brethren who are elders,
comfort the people with your words, and admonish them to
remember that our fathers were tried in many, ways, and had to
overcome manifold temptations, in order that they might be
proved whether they served God with their hearts. Thus, Isaac,
Jacob and Moses remained steadfast, and had to overcome much
.affliction; but the others, who would not accept affliction,
but impatiently murmured against God,were destroyed by the
destroyer and by serpents. But let us remember that we are
chastised. of God, to make us better, and not for our
destruction, and that the punishment is far less.than our sins.
For whom the Lord loveth lie chasteneth, and scourgeth every
son whom He receiveth. But if ye be without chastisement,</p>

</div><div id="660"> 

<p>whereof all are partakers, then are ye bastards, and not
sons. Hebrews 12:6, 8. Hence, dear friends, let us be patient
in this tribulation for a little while; for the sufferings of
this present time are not worthy to be compared with the glory
which shall be revealed in us. Romans 8:18. But the God of all
grace stablish, strengthen and settle us all, this I wish you
all for a greeting. I Pet. 5:10.</p>

<p>I, Peter, greet you much, and earnestly desire that you
would see to my wife; she hopes to do her best, she told me. We
ask you to pray for us, that we may finish our course to the
praise of God and the salvation of our souls. We also enjoin
you, that if Pauwels has not moved, he would better do so; we
advise it for the best. We would write more explicitly, but we
fear that the letter might fall into wrong hands. I, Pieter
Potvliet, greet you much, and give you a testament. Continue
steadfast and immovable in the work of the Lord; see that your
labor be not in vain. I commend you to God. By me, JELIS
STRINGS.</p>

<h2>THE SECOND LETTER OF JELIS STRINGS</h2> 

<p>Grace, mercy and peace from God the heavenly Father and the
Lord Jesus Christ, the Son of the Father, in truth and in love.
May He stablish, strengthen and settle you who have to suffer
for a little while for Christ's sake; and many He grant you,
according to the riches of His glory and power, to be
strengthened with might in the inner man, and that Christ may
dwell in your hearts by faith, and you be rooted and grounded
in love, so that you may all be bound together with the bond of
love, and thus, through the uniting of the Holy Spirit, and
obedience to the Lord, according to the Gospel, be built up
together harmoniously a holy temple and city of God; this I
wish you all who love the Lord, for a cordial greeting, dear
brethren and sisters in the Lord.</p>

<p>Further, after all greeting, I hope to write a little again
concerning the disputation we had with our adversaries, though
it is not very much; for when we were apprehended, we resolved
among ourselves, not to dispute, unless we might all come
together, which was also observed, so that they should have
nothing to lie behind our back, and that if they should hear a
word more from one than from another they might not confuse the
simple. On account of this they were much incensed; and said
that they all depended on me. They often came to dispute; but
we would not, unless we might all come together, and in the
marketplace. This angered them much, and they said, "Where was
it ever seen that a disputation was held in the marketplace?
You people want to introduce new doctrines." Finally, we
consented that we would dispute in prison, provided we might
all come together; but they would not have it otherwise than
each separately, and this we would not do. Thus they came twice
or three times, and we had some conversation with them each time, in order that they might not say that we refused to
hear them. Our conversation was about the three persons and the
incarnation. The first question he put to me was whether I did
not believe that if men believed in Christ Jesus, and
henceforth forsook all evil they would be saved. I said, "Yes;
all who believe that Jesus Christ is the Son of God, who died
for us, and through this faith show obedience to the Gospel,
shall be saved.""Well then," said they,"If they believe that
children may be baptized, they will be saved, according to your
own words." I said, "My lord, it seems to me, that you are like
the scribes; they sought to censure Christ by subtlety, and it
appears to me that you do the same." Matt. 22:1 5."Yes," said
he;"Christ knew how to answer the scribes, and so will you, if
you have the Spirit of Christ." I said, "If they show obedience
to the Gospel, they will not baptize children, nor cause them
to be baptized; for it is not instituted or commanded of God,
to baptize children; but you people have planted it, and
whatever men have planted shall be rooted up of God, and thus
it will go with your infant baptism." Matt. 15:13. He forthwith
said that the Anabaptists believed that Christ brought His
flesh from heaven. I said that it was a lie;"are you not
ashamed (I said) to sit here and lie in this manner in my
presence?" He said, "What you believe, I know not; but others
believe thus." I said that it was a lie;"I have never heard," I
said,"of any that held such a faith; yet I have had more
intercourse with them than you have; are you not ashamed to sit
here and lie thus in my preesnce?" Then he became very
boastful; three or four other priests and the bailiff were also
sitting there, and they said, "Jelis, talk decently." I
said, "Then do not lie so." I spoke loudly, that my comrades
should hear it.</p>

<p>He then asked, "What is your faith, then?""I believe with all
the apostles, that He is the Son of God, as Peter confessed"
(Matt. 16:16; John 20; 6:69),"visible and invisible; that the
Word by which all things were made became flesh in Mary,
through the power of the Most High." He asked whether the Word
became flesh like Lot's wife became a pillar of salt, or the
water, wine. I said, "No." He asked, "How then?" I said, "It became man, and it
continued to be the Word; that is, the Word which was invisible
became visible; that which was impalpable became palpable; that
which was impossible became possible." He said, "Was the Word not God?" I replied, "It is God and man.""Did
God die?" he said. I replied, "He died according to His
humanity, as Peter says</p>

<p>'put to death according to the flesh, but quickened
according to the spirit.'" I Pet. 3:18.</p>

<p>I then asked him, how he confessed the unity. He confessed
three persons and one God. I asked whether the Holy Ghost were
a person. He said, "Yes." I said, "When Mary was greeted by the angel, that she
should conceive, and she did not know how this should come to
pass, as she had</p>

</div><div id="661"> 

<p>never known a man, the angel said: 'The Holy Ghost shall
come upon thee.' Luke 1:26. Now, if the Holy Ghost is a person,
then one person conceived another. And in the Acts of the
Apostles it is written that when the apostles received the Holy
Ghost, He sat upon each of them. Acts 2:3. But a person can sit
only upon one man. And in the first chapter (v. 7) of the Book
of Wisdom it is written that the Spirit of the Lord filleth the
world. To what person would you compare Him?" He did not know
what to say. He then said, "I do not consider them persons such
as Pieter, Klaes, and Jan." I said, "To whom then do you compare
them?" They then exchanged a few words in Latin, and said, "We
only call them persons: did you think that we considered them
three human beings?" I said, "Yes." He said, "If you have taught
men so, you must confess that you have slandered us, and that
you are a false teacher." I said, "I am no teacher; I have
enough to do to teach myself." I added, "You call them persons;
are they not such? Why then do you call them three persons?" He
said, "It amounts to the same thing." I said, "It does not; a
person is a human being, and you certainly cannot compare them
to human beings." Then he said;"God the Father is not the Son;
the Son is not the Father; the Holy Ghost is neither the Father
nor the Son. And these are three; the one is what the other is
not, and though they are three, yet are they but one God." I
said, "This is also my faith, and in accordance with it I know
but one person, that is Jesus Christ, who was visible and
palpable; but the others I do not know what to compare them
to." On this point we agreed, and he let go his persons. He
then asked again whether God had died. I said, "You have sat
here and acknowledged to me that you do not consider the Word
to be the Father, nor the Father to be the Word, though they,
according to the Godhead, are one God; but you regard them as
three witnesses; and two of these witnesses did not become man,
but the Word, by which all things were made, became flesh, as
John says in the first chapter [of his Gospel]. Although this
Word became man, it therefore does not cease to be one God with
the Father; else it could not be God and man."</p>

<p>Then he said: -"Jelis, you err." And they adduced Rom. 1:3
in their Testament where it read"Who became of the seed of
David according to the flesh, is declared to be the Son of God
with power, according to the Spirit." I said that in rendering
it <i>became</i> they had mistranslated the word; that it ought
to read: <i>born of the seed of David.</i> "Go," I said,"and
examine the Testaments which you had printed thirty or
thirty-six years ago, see whether in them it reads thus. I have
read it therein: <i>born,</i> as it ought to be; but you have
now caused it to be altered thus, to deceive the simple
hearts." This made them very angry. I then said"Say it as it
ought to be: <i>born;</i> for a woman can certainly not make a
child." Then he said, "Be came or assumed is the same thing; as it is written 'He took
not on him (the nature of) angels, but he took on him the seed
of Abraham."' Heb. 2:16. I said, "This also is changed; it ought
to read: 'He receiveth not angels; but he receiveth the seed of
Abraham as his children; and believers are counted for the
seed' (Rom. 9:8); for Paul says (I Cor. 11:8), that the man is
not of the woman, but the woman of the man." They said, "This is
spoken of Adam and Eve." I said, "Here God has plainly shown
that the man is not of the woman, but the woman of the man,
which is in direct opposition to your belief. Paul speaks still
more fully on generation; for he says: 'As the woman is of the
man, even so is the man also by the woman; but all things of
God.' v. 12. This certainly has reference to generation, for
Adam was not by Eve." He said that it had to be understood so.
I said, "I do not understand it so." We had many more words yet
concerning the promises; but I have not the space to write
it.</p>

<p>All these words I had with the parish priest of St. Martins,
a very crafty customer, craftier than any one I ever heard; all
the others are as nothing compared to him. Written in haste, in
the dark, with ink made of coals; bear patiently with it. The
day before we were delivered to the secular lords, we were
brought before the Dean of. Ronse. He asked us whether we had
come to a determination. I said, "I am always determined to
eschew evil, and to do that which is good, as far as I know."
There were three or four judges present, and the under-bailiff.
He said it was great arrogance that I pretended to be wiser
than all the world; there were Ambrose and Augustine, and other
holy men</p>

<p>and they understood it so. I said, "I do not pretend to know
anything; but I know the faith to be the truth, and herein I
want to abide." Farewell; I commend you to God.</p>

<p>Your weak brother in the Lord,</p>

<p>JELIS STRINGS.</p><br />

<h1>HEYNDRICK EEMKENS, A. D. 1562</h1>

<p>In the year 1562 there was apprehended at Utrecht, for the
testimony of our dear Lord Jesus Christ, a brother named
Heyndrick Eemkens, a tailor, who, after all solicitations and
pains suffered, finally received word that he was to die, at
which he rejoiced that he should also have the privilege of
being a witness for the name of the Lord. This message was
brought him by the pastor of the Buerchurch and a Franciscan
monk named Friar Jan van Herentals, who in a few words informed
him of it, and then left him. He said to friar Jan, "You need
not come again tomorrow, for I do not need you." In the morning
he was brought out from his prison into another room, where he
had many words with the monk, who forthwith condemned him.
Thereupon he replied, "Judge not, and ye shall not be judged." Luke 6:37. The monk
said, "You confessed that you</p>

</div><div id="662"> 

<p>did not believe that Christ assumed flesh from Mary." He
replied, "I have said it once in my confession; shall I tell you
again?" and he referred him to John 1.</p>

<p>The monk then asked him whether he would not confess to him.
He answered, "I have confessed to God." The monk said, "Have you
lived to be so old without ever confessing?""No," said he,"I
have indeed confessed to men; but God knows I heartily regret
that I submitted so long to your confession." The monk then
asked him whether he did not want to hear a mass. He replied, "I
have read so many, that I loathe the mass; and even though I do
not want to have it, yet if you want to read it, nevertheless,
how can I prevent it? Hence, if you want to do it, do so, but
not on my account; for I do not wish it." Then the monk asked
him whether he would not have the sacrament; but he said, "No,
but if I could partake of the Lord's Supper as instituted and
commanded by the Lord, and observed by the apostles and their
churcles, this I should heartily desire, and thank the Lard for
it, but your deception I do not want." Upon this the monk again
damned him two or three times.</p>

<p>The thief-takers then came, and wanted to give him something
to drink, but he refused it. Then came one of the jailer's
daughters, a wanton girl, and wanted to put it into his mouth
with a spoon, as they were sitting and drinking with the
thief-takers, but Heyndrick said to her, "I have certainly told
you that I do not want it; hence, let me in peace, if it is
possible." Thereupon one of the thief-takers said, "Do you want
to go out of this world on an empty stomach?" He said to him, "I
thirst for the true wine, of which I shortly hope to drink."
But the monk said, "God does not put new wine into old bottles."
But he said to the monk, "Because I have become renewed,
therefore you hate me." Much more was said yet, which has been
forgotten, since he himself could not write. This was written
by one who was present when Heyndrick spoke with the monk.
Though he was not a brother or fellow member with Heyndrick in
thq church, yet his friendly disposition prompted hitn to write
down what he remembered of it, just as he saw and heard it, for
the remembrance of all lovers of the truth; and the following
was seen and heard not only by him, but also by all the
citizens generally, who can with him testify to it.</p>

<p>When Heyndrick had ascended the scaffold, he began to speak
much to the people, saying, among other things, "Good citizens,
repent, and believe only the Gospel and not the traditions of
men."</p>

<p>When they led him to the lords, to hear his sentence, he
again turned his face to the citizens and said that all the
practices observed were only human traditions, and that whoever
would not follow them had to be the reproach and offscouring of
all men, yea, must thus suffer death. Matt. 15:6; I Corinthians
4:13.</p>

<p>The sentence having been read, many of the people, who
pitied him, and did not wish to see him die, went away. But
Heyndrick Eemkens fell upon his knees and face, on the
scaffold, to pour out his earnest prayer before the Lord. When
the executioner saw him fall down, he drew his cloak from his
shoulders, and pulled him up by his shirt, so that he could not
finish his prayer.</p>

<p>Heyndrick then said to the people, "Dear citizens, repent,
for it is more than time. Live according to God's commandments
and the words of the holy Gospel." And he called again with a
loud voice, "This is the narrow way, and the strait gate;" and
named the chapters where it was written, and many other
Scriptures having the same bearing. He then stepped of his own
accord, with a glad heart, upon the bench where. he was to be
strangled and burnt, and said again, "This is the strait gate,
press through it; through this pressed the men of God, for he
that fights steadfastly unto the end shall be saved; of this I
have no doubt." With great courage he put his body and neck to
the stake, and said again with a joyful heart, "Dear citizens,
repent; believe the Gospel and not men; for this is the narrow
way which a Christian must walk." The executioner then took a
chain, putting it around his body, and fastened a little bag of
gunpowder to his neck, so that it hung over his breast.
Heyndrick spoke boldly to the very last, but his words could
not be understood very well, for the executioner took a cord,
laid it around his neck, and twisted it tightly. Heyndrick
closed his eyes, just as though he had fallen into a swoon, and
he was not seen to move any more, save that he cast up his eyes
to heaven once more, and then immediately lost consciousness.
Thereupon the executioner drew away the bench from under his
feet, and seizing a fork, thrust the same into a bundle of
straw and held the latter to a pot with fire standing on the
scaffold, until it caught fire, whereupon he applied it to the
gunpowder. The blaze flashed up to his eyes but did not burn
his hair. He lifted up his hands to heaven once more, after
<i>which he</i> showed no further sign of life.</p>

<p>Thus did Heyndrick Eemkens offer up his sacrifice, as a
valiant witness of the Lord, on the 10th of June, 1562, about
between 10 and 11 o'clock, A. M.</p>

<h2>GEORGE FRIESEN, A CABINETMAKER, AND WILLIAM VAN KEPPEL, A. D. 1562</h2> 

<p>This George Friesen, a cabinetmaker, and William van Keppel,
formerly a mass priest, were both apprehended at Cologne, A. D.
1562, for the evangelical truth. When William was sought and
found he willingly went with his captors, who first took him
into a tower of the city, where, however, he did not remain
long, since they removed him into the count's dungeon, whither
those were taken who were condemned to death. In this dungeon
he found said Georee Friesen, who was his brother</p>

</div><div id="663"> 

<p>in the Lord, and also a prisoner, and whose company was a
great comfort to him.</p>

<p>Manifold were .the nets spread and the snares laid, to catch
their souls; but the principal ado and clamor was about infant
baptism, which their adversaries claimed to be right; but as
they could not prove it by the Word of God, they employed human
wisdom, but to God be the praise, with this they could not move
these men. Now the lords entreated them, now they severely
'threatened them with torture and death; but the prisoners
rejoiced in it. The others said things sweet and things bitter,
but this could not move the prisoners, for through the help of
the Lord their hearts stood firm as a wall.</p>

<p>The count offered to give George money, and his servant maid
to wife, if he would renounce his faith. But George would
adhere to the truth and said to the count, "Your servant maid,
riches, or money cannot take me to God, but I have chosen
something better, for which I hope to strive." There also came
to William a subtle individual, who made him fair promises and
said that he would take him to England, who would soon have:
drawn the net of delusion over his head if the Lord had not
succored and preserved him.</p>

<p>When the last hour arrived that they were to be prepared for
the offering, for which they greatly longed, they were both
brought out of prison-the count's dungeon-to the house of the
count, into a hall, at one o'clock in the night. There much
arrogant and scornful language was used against them, and they
were much tormented, to which George said nothing. William,
also, answering but little. This continued half the night, till
break of day or twilight, when the two prisoners were hurriedly
taken to the Rhine, where they were to be drowned.</p>

<p>When George saw how hurriedly they were taken to the Rhine
in the early morning, he called to the count, saying, "Sir
count, what becomes of the promise you made us? for you said
that you should put us to death in broad daylight." But no one
paid attention to these words, but they were hurried to the
place where they were to be put to death, namely the Rhine. And
thus were fulfilled the words of David, where he says, "They
have privily slain the upright." Ps. 11:2. May the Lord forgive
them, for they know not what they do.</p>

<p>When they were taken out on the water, in a boat, William
divested himself of his clothes, and laid his hands upon his
feet, to be bound thus; for he thought that he was to be
drowned and get home first. But this was not to be his fate,
they made him put his clothes on again, and told him that he
should wait.</p>

<p>And thus George was compelled to be the first one, to be
made ready for an offering. When he was ready for death, he
took brotherly leave from William, and they kissed each other
with a holy kiss of love. Then George was thrown over-board,
and drowned in the Rhine, thus. testifying with his death that he was a partaker of Christ's sufferings, to
receive at His hands, through grace, the crown upon mount Sion,
and rejoice forever with Him. II Esd. 2:43.</p>

<p>After George was drowned, the executioner said to
William, "Put on your clothes; I will take you to the shore, and
there behead you." William, through the grace of God, was
willing and ready for it, and said, "You may do with me whatever
God wills and permits."</p>

<p>When they came on shore, they set William at liberty. The
executioner said to him, "Go your way." Whether they did this
because William had been a priest, and they would have had to
desecrate him, before putting him to death, and whether they
therefore rather released him, than go to such trouble is not
known.</p>

<h2>AN ADMONITION WHICH GEORGE FRIESEN SENT FROM PRISON</h2> 

<p>I proclaim unto you, O men, one and all, a new message and
glad tidings, through the Word of the Lord, which is, that you
shall turn from your sinful life to God that your sins may be
forgiven; cleanse your hearts, and forsake the world and its
false show to which it lends so beautiful an aspect.</p>

<p>Behold, I proclaim unto you much joy, which I experience, as
Christ the Son of God promised, saying, "I will not leave you
comfortless." Those who trust in me, them will I help bear
their sorrow, and deliver them out of all distress. For He
Himself bound up our putrefying wounds, and healed them, which
none other could do. Luke 10: 34. He healed us without merit on
our part; when we were yet enemies, He washed' us with clean
water, and sent us the Comforter, the Holy Ghost -as the
faithful gracious Saviour Christ promised-who shall bring to
our remembrance all that we have heard. Rom. 5:10; Ezek. 36:25;
John 14:16. If we firmly abide in Him, and bring forth good
fruits, He will give us a mouth and wisdom, as His divine Word
says, if we diligently live according to His will; yea, such a
mouth He will give us, that none of the wise of this world, who
are yet in sin, and fail of the truth, shall be able to
contradict us. Luke 21:15.</p>

<p>I daily find that, as the raging waves of the sea, driven by
fierce winds, cast up their mire and dirt, and cannot rest, so
it is also with these; if there were anything good in them, it
would come to light. Isaiah 57:20. Now, even as the flowers of
the field drop off, so it goes with those who consider too
late; for the grass withereth, and the flower fadeth; but the
Word of God abideth forever. Isa. 40:8:</p>

<p>I find still another matter which concerns me greatly,
namely, that so many shall knock and say, "Lord, open unto us,
and let us enter in also; to whom the Lord shall say: I know
you not;" and that it will avail them nothing to say, "Did we
not</p>

</div><div id="664"> 

<p>believe that thou art the true God, and that he whom thou
anointest, and whom the Jews mocked is thy Child?" Luke 13:25.
If they persist in their evil deeds, anguish shall come upon
them, so that they shall cry, woe, woe, .upon all the priests
of Baal who have deceived them here, and who now sit in Moses'
seat, persecute Christ, and .honor Baal, saying, "Do according
to our words, and not after our works; by which they show that
they do not walk aright." Matt. 23:2. O generation of vipers,
who hath made you believe that you shall escape the wrath of
God and the damnation of hell? Can the Lord not say to
them,-"If you were so wise as to know me, why then did you not
seek me by following the kingdom of my Father. Therefore,
depart from me, all ye hypocrites, to the devil and his angels,
into the lake of fire, and eternal damnation." Matt. 7:23. But
you, brethren and sisters, who are called to the marriage
supper of the Lamb (Revelation 19:9), make yourselves sincerely
ready in these latter times, for the marriage supper; and do
not suffer yourselves to be deprived of the food that is set
before you, lest you perish with hunger; cling firmly to Jesus
Christ; see that you lose not those things which you have
wrought; and let no one lead you astray on this earth, nor be
afraid of the princes of this world; for when they shall appear
before the face of Christ, they will all be put to shame. II
John 8'; Matt. 24:4; 10:28.</p>

<p>Betake yourselves now to the Lord, for now is the right
time; and let not the world confound you, lest you be deceived.
Watch, you that are on the ocean, lest you perish; believe in
the Lord with all your heart, and you, will weather the
tempest. May the King of kings, to whom all things are known,
uphold us with His mighty hand, that we may on account of no
adversity depart from Him, but may faithfully adhere to His
Word even unto death. Hereby I will, gladly resign my life
at.this time, and enter this narrow way through .Christ; by His
help I will gladly bear His yoke, and in this yoke alone pull
my plow. Ch God, that I might be so fortunate as to see the
work begun in me brought to such a happy end, to the salvation
of my soul and to Thy glory, and this solely through Thy
powerricher or more highly exalted as a 'mortal I could not
become! I should praise. and magnify Thee for it through Christ
Thy,Son. Dear brethren and sisters, I have written this in my
severe imprisonment, and give it to you for an admonition: I,
George Friesen, have composed this in the night, while others
slept; I hope. that ,daylight will soon shine brightly. O Lord
that 'thou wouldst speedily come to me in prison, deliver me
from my chains, and free me from my bonds, and protect me from
the wicked-O then I should stand well before The,e! My
brethren, if you would rejoice in t6e spirit, and herein
understand me thoroughly, then beware of sin, and you will see
clearly. And if you would spiritually understand the divine
law, go to the Lord, and He will help you in it.</p>

<h2>MARTIJNTGEN AELMEERS, 'A. D. 1562</h2> 

<p>In the year 1562 there was apprehended at Honschote,
in,Flanders, a young girl named Martijntgen Helmeers, of
Steenwijcke, because she had been baptized upon her faith, and
ordered her walk and conversatiori'according to the doctrine of
the Gospel of our Lord Jesus Christ.</p>

<p>After great steadfastness she was sentenced to death, and
burnt, and thus offered up to God an acceptable, living
sacrifice, and escaped the torment of eternal fire. .</p>

<h2>NIKASEN VAN AELMEERS, A. D. 1562</h2> 

<p>The same year, Nikasen Aelmeers, the brother of the
afore-mentioned Martijntgen, was apprehended for the faith and
the divine truth, at Bruges in Flanders, and when na pain or
torture could draw him from his faith, he was condemned and
burnt, as a true witness of our Lord Jesus, Christ.</p>

<h2>KAREL VAN .DEN VELDE, WITH PROENTGEN HIS WIFE, . FRANCHOYS DE SWARTE, WITH KLAESKEN HIS WIFE, JASPER THE SHOEMAKER, CHARLO DE WAEL, AND MARTIJNE AMARE, IN THE YEAR 1562</h2> 

<p>In the year 1562, there were apprehended at Honschote in
Flanders, for the testimony of the truth, seven persons,
namely, Karel van den Velde, of Ghent, with Proentgen his wife,
Franchoy&amp; de Swarte, of Belle, with Klaesken his wife,
jasper the shoemaker, Charlo, a lad, and Martijntgen Amare, a
young maiden, all of whom steadfastly adhered to the truth and
the Word of God. Five of them, namely, the four male persons
and the girl, were very soon after their apprehension burnt for
their faith; but the two women, sisters, were sometime
afterwards secretly drowned in a tub. One:of the women, when
she saw that they intended to put her to death secretly,
complained of it, since she would have preferred publicly to
testify to the truth with her death; whereupon her sister said:
."It ,is all the same, for God sees it; He will reward us, and
avenge our wrongs." II Chron, .16:9; Rev. 6:10.</p>

<p>Thus they all passed through the conflict as valiant heroes,
and obtained leave to eat of the tree of life,' which is in the
midst of the paradise of God. Rev. 2:7.</p>

<h2>JAN GRENDEL, A. D. 1562</h2> 

<p>In the year 1562, a man named Jan Grendel, from Kortrijck,
in Flanders, came from Cludewater to Goes, and was the same
evening on which he arrived in town apprehended by bailiff
Vijtwijck, who, upon having taken him to his house,
interrogated him concerning his faith, of which he made open
confession, whereupon he was put in prison, where he lay for
about a year. Bailiff Vijtwijck having, for maladministration,
been deposed</p>

</div><div id="665"> 

<p>from his bailiwick, another named Floris Schaeck, stepped
into this office, and under the latter, Jan, after many
solicitations and sufferings, was publicly burnt, or put to
death, in the marketplace, for his faith, in Lent of the year
1562.</p>

<h2>FRANCIS VAN DER SACH AND ANTHONY WELSCH, A. D. 1562</h2> 

<p>In the year 1562 Brother Francis van der Sach, a native of
Rovigo in Italy, and minister of the Word of God (still on
trial) and one who had been sent with him, named Anthony
Welsch, were apprehended at Capo d' Istria, about one hundred
Italian miles from Venice, as they were about to return to the
church in Germany, accompanied by a large number of people,
who, however, were not taken along, but suffered to go. Francis
was ironed on his feet like a malefactor, and they were
separately confined. There at Capo d' Istria they tempted and
assailed them in a satanic manner, as they are accustomed to do
at such times, and they employed all their might to entrap them
into their snares, in order to cause them to stumble, and to
make them despond and apostatize from God; especially was
Francis severely assailed; but they valiantly resisted it all.
Having been heard and examined at Capo d' Istria concerning
everything, they were left in confinement yet for three days,
ironed hand and foot, and then sent to Venice. On this voyage
they lay still for three days and nights, on account of the
tempestuous sea, in the meantime comforting each other, and
admonishing one another to constancy or steadfastness, so that
it seemed as though they scarcely felt the pains resulting from
the iron fetters and from other causes, which nevertheless hurt
them greatly day and night.</p>

<p>Arriving at Venice the first day of September of said year,
they were immediately separately confined in the dark dungeons
of the chief senators, where they lay for a whole month, when
they were brought before three Venetian secular, and also
several so-called spiritual, lords, who sat there in great
pomp, most magnificently arrayed, and they asked brother
Francis, whether he still adhered to the belief which he had
indicated to the examiners and lords who had examined him at
Capo d' Istria in regard to his doings, and whether he still
held it to be the truth. He said to them, "I hold it to be the
truth, and it is the truth."</p>

<p>They then asked him whether he believed all that the holy,
Catholic, apostolical, Christian church believes. He
replied, "As far as the faith is concerned, I believe every
article of the apostolical Christian faith." They then asked
him also concerning baptism, the sacrament, confession, and
many other things; but when he thoroughly answered everything,
they urged him very hard, berating him most severely, and then
remanded him to prison. They also examined Brother Anthony, who
likewise made a good confession of faith to them.</p>

<p>Shortly after, they examined Francis again, especially in
regard to infant baptism, but did not accomplish their purpose.
After this, they had them brought before them several times
yet, and argued with them. They also sent monks to them, who
when they replied to their questions, continually called them
heretics and gainsayers of so many councils, and said that if
they would not desist, they should have to die, and with this
they had them taken back to prison.</p>

<p>Soon after the lords again sent a monk, an inquisitor, to
them, who was to speak with them concerning the faith. He first
asked them whether they belonged to the transmontane church.
Francis replied, "Yes." Thereupon the monk said, "This is the
first error;" and asked whether he had also broken bread with
them. Francis answering in the affirmative, the monk said, "This
also is an error." And thus he spoke with regard to everything;
no matter what they answered, the monk always said that they
were heretics and deceivers.</p>

<p>The monk also said, "Tell me, who is the head of the church?"
Francis replied, "Christ." The monk said, "This, too, is an
error." Then Francis said, "You call us heretics, but you
yourself are a heretic, and not we, for Christ is certainly the
head of His church." But the monk said, "The pope is the head
here on earth." Francis said, "A body with two heads is a
hideous thing." Thereupon the monk again began to call him a
heretic, and to admonish him to desist. But Brother Francis
told him that he could not desist before he should have proved
this to him by the holy Scriptures. The monk said, "We are not
bound to prove this to you by the Scriptures." They were then
taken back to prison, where Francis put his confession and
defense in writing, and delivered it.</p>

<p>After this, they lay in prison for a long time yet, in all
about two years, always steadfastly continuing, in many
disputations, in the truth confessed, which they had accepted,
and were then sentenced to death, and, in the year 1564, cast
into the sea, at Venice, and drowned. But the sea will have to
give up her dead at the judgment day of the Lord, when such
murderers of the pious will be dearly requited, and will see
with great terror, how heinous an offense against God it is,
thus to touch His believers. See Zech. 2:8; Acts 9:5.</p>

<h2>JAN DE SWARTE, KLAESKEN HIS WIFE, KLAES, CHRISTIAN, HANS AND MAHIEU, HIS FOUR SONS; PERCEVAL VAN DEN BERGE, JAN MAES, PIETER THE SHOEMAKER, HENDRICK AERTS, THE HATTER, JANNEKEN CABILJAUS HIS WIFE, KALLEKEN STEENS, AND HER MAN, IN THE YEAR, A. D. 1563</h2> 

<p>Jan de Swarte, a very good-hearted man, of Nipkerke, with
his wife and adult children, came to the knowledge of the
truth, and united with the church of God. Afterwards he was
chosen and ordained a minister of the church, in which ministry
he, </p>

</div><div id="666"> 

<p>according to his ability, and in simplicity, so conducted
himself (not only in the deaconship, by caring for the poor,
but also, according to his gift received from God, in
dispensing the Word of the exhortation), that he endeared
himself to all that knew him. I Cor. 12:4; II Tim. 2:15.</p>

<p>And as the apostle Paul foretold, that all that will live
godly in Jesus Christ shall suffer persecution, so he also met
with it, on which account he resided in various towns and
villages of Flanders, as in Honschote, Rijssel, Wervick,
Meenen, and finally at Halewijn, supporting himself mostly with
tapeweaving. With his wages he was very benevolent and liberal
to the poor, not only to those of the household of faith, but
to all in general (II Cor. 8: 1; Gal. 6:10), by which
especially he left behind him a good name, to the praise and
glory of God, as also by hospitality, as taught in the
Scriptures (Romans 12:13), in which he was not negligent, since
it appeared that when he was apprehended, there lodged with him
a brother from Doornick, named Perceval van den Berge, a native
of Zwevegem, and another, who had come from Honschote, whose
name was Jan Maes.</p>

<p>At that time there resided at Halewijn various other.
God-fearing brethren and sisters, which being greatly envied by
N., the priest of the castle, he betrayed them into the hands
of the Dean of Ronse, the inquisitor in Flanders, who, on a
Saturday night, the 7th of March, 1563, quietly came thither
with a great number of servants, from Rijssel, surrounded
several houses, entered them, and apprehended the
afore-mentioned Jan de Swarte, with Klaesken his wife and four
sons, namely, Klaes, Christian, Hans, and Mahieu (who was only
about sixteen years old), and also Perceval van den Berge, and
Jan Maes, already mentioned. Besides these he also apprehended
one Pieter the shoemaker, with jacomijntgen his wife, which
latter did not remain steadfast. Also, one Heyndrick Aerts the
hatter, with janneken Cabiljaus his wife, and another sister,
Kalleken Steens, the wife of a brother whose name was
Augustijn.</p>

<p>When Jan de Swarte was apprehended, his two younger sons
were not present, but came in the meantime. When they came to
the house the neighbors warned them, that those who apprehended
their father and mother were in the house. The one said to the
other, "Do not let us flee, but let us die with father and
mother." In the meantime Jan de Swarte was led out of the house
a prisoner, and seeing his sons, he said to them, "Children, do you want to, go along to the New Jerusalem?"
They replied, "Yes, father;" and were thus led captive with
them.</p>

<p>The inquisitor brought them all prisoners to Rijssel, and
there had them very closely confined in the castle. Jan was put
into a hole by himself, which was called the"Paradise," and was
so small that he could neither stand upright in it, nor lie
down full length.</p>

<p>It happened one day that divers brethren and sisters,
prompted by love and compassion, had come from without the
city, and were standing over against the castle, calling to the
prisoners over the fortification, for their consolation, that
among them there was one brother named Herman, who being
noticed by one of the beadles of the town, who came out
secretly, was also apprehended.</p>

<p>After an imprisonment of ten days, the inquisitor delivered
these prisoners into the hands of the secular authorities, who
first took out Jan de Swarte with his son Klaes, Pieter, the
shoemaker, Hendrick Aerts, the hatter, Percival van den Berg,
and Jan Maes, all six of whom, because they valiantly and
steadfastly adhered to the divine truth, they sentenced to
death, and took them in a wagon to the marketplace, where stood
the scaffold, provided with earth and stakes. There they were
taken up one after another, and two and two fastened to a
stake.</p>

<p>As they were going to death, the clock struck. John asked
what time it was. He was told that it was four o'clock. He
consoled himself with this, saying, "At five o'clock we hope to
be in our lodging or resting place." His son Klaes, said, "We
have to die for the reason that we believe!!that Jesus Christ,
the Son of the eternal God, is from heaven and not of the
earth."</p>

<p>Pieter was gagged, to prevent him from speaking. When they
stood at the stakes, wood and straw were placed around them, to
which fire was then set, and they were thus burnt alive to
ashes.</p>

<p>A few days afterwards also Klaesken, the wife of Jan de
Swarte, with her three sons, and Herman, because they adhered
immovably to the love of God, were all five sentenced to death
by the authorities, and also burned alive to ashes, persevering
unto the end as valiant witnesses of Christ.</p>

<p>Almost a year after this, after very long imprisonment,
Janneken Cabiljaus and kalleken Steens, were sentenced to
death, placed alive into the fire, and burnt to ashes, as
valiant and steadfast witnesses of the divine truth.</p>

<p>It also came to pass that the priest of the castle, N., who
had so spitefully betrayed these dear friends of God, was very
sorely punished by God; for such putrefaction entered his
flesh, that it fell off piecemeal, or was cut off from time to
time, from his body, no physicians being able to cure the
disease.!!Thus it happened on one occasion; a large piece, of
putrid flesh having dropped, or been cut off from his body,
that the same was eaten by a dog, while he beheld it with his
own eyes. How he must have felt on this occasion, it is easy to
imagine, especially when viewing it as the fulfillment of a
curse said to have been pronounced upon him."That he should yet
with his own eyes see the dogs eat his flesh."</p>

<p>It also happened that while the priest was lying sick, a man
came to visit him, who, when the former complained to him of
his great misery, remarked to him, "It is the coals from the
fire at</p>

</div><div id="667"> 

<p>Rijssel"-namely, from the burning of the friends mentioned
above; which did not please the priest very much; but he had to
bear this taunt as well as the punishment sent him from God.
And in this way he at last died most miserably, even as we read
that in former times it happened to Antiochus and Herod. II
Macc. 9:9; Acts 12:23.</p>

<h2>DIRK LAMBERTS, CHRISTIAN VAN WETTEREN, AND ANTONIJN DE WALE, A. D. 1563</h2> 

<p>At Ghent in Flanders there were apprehended, for the faith,
three brethren, namely, Dirk Lamberts, Christian van Wetteren,
and Antonijn de Wale, who contended valiantly and heroically
for their faith and the truth, from which they would not depart
for any temptation, pain or suffering, so that they were
finally sentenced to death. First Dirk Lamberts, and shortly
afterwards the other two, had to follow Christ by entering
through death into life; therefore they shall be clothed in
fine linen with all the elect of God, and receive; palms into
their hands, and the crown of life upon their heads.</p>

<h2>JOOS JANS PUT TO DEATH, A. D. 1563</h2> 

<p>The same year a brother named Joos Jans; was apprehended at
Somerdijck, for living according to the truth, and was
immediately taken to.Zierickzee; where he suffered much
examination and hardship, but suffered himself nevertheless in
no wise to be moved or turned away from the Word of God and the
love of Christ, so that he was finally sentenced to death and
beheaded, thus valiantly testifying with his blood to the
truth.</p>

<p>NOTE - The repeatedly, mentioned decree of Emperor Charles
V, enacted in the year 1550and confirmed by Philip II, King
of Spain, A. D. 155.6 (for which year we have circumstantially
shown the same), as also, A. D. 1560, was at this time, namely,
A. D. 1564, renewed and established the third time, for the
annihilation and 'destruction of the innocent and defenseless
Christian believers, as may be seen in the. large <i>book</i>
of <i>decrees</i> of Ghent, and Cited by William I, Prince of
Orange, in his defence against his adversaries, edition 1599,
page 165, etc.</p>

<p>Thereupon followed no small persecution, as, may be seen
from the history of the following martyrs.</p>

<h2>DANIEL KALVAERT, BURNED, A. D. 1564</h2> 

<p>Daniel Kalvaert, a native of Thielt, in Flanders, was
apprehended, A. D. 1564; at Arm' entiers, for the testimony of
the truth, and thence taken to Rijssel, but after being
subjected to some S*olicitation and torture, he was brought
back to Armentiers, escorted by forty beadles, and there
sentenced by the authorities, to be burnt alive to ashes; which
offering he boldly brought, after which his ashes were thrown
into the river Leye.</p>

<h2>PIETER VAN OOSTHOVE, A. D. 1564</h2> 

<p>Pieter Floriss, called of Oosthove, a native of Nipkerke in
Flanders, was apprehended for the divine truth, at Armentiers,
A. D. 1564, and; through many solicitations and sufferings, was
prevailed upon to apostatize from his faith, induced by the
promise that he should not die, and be released. But when again
in his prison, and coming to himself, he reflected how greatly
he had suffered himself to be deceived, for though he should
escape temporal death for a little while, he .should therefor
have to taste eternal death. This produced in him such an
agonizing sorrow, that he, like Peter, betook himself with
earnest supplication to Almighty God, and besought Him with
scalding tears for forgiveness for the great offense he had
committed, and for a more steadfast mind than he had shown
before. His prayer was not left unheard, for when he was
brought before the authorities again, he utterly renounced his
apostasy,' and thenceforth boldly confessed his faith, and
steadfastly adhered to it, so that he was finally sentenced to
death,to which he went with glad constancy, and was thus
strangled and burnt.</p>

<h2>STEVEN DE GRAFT; AND SIJNTGEN, A. D.: 1564,</h2> 

<p><i>In</i> the year 1564 there was apprehended at Ghent in
Flanders, for the truth; a brother named Steven de Graet, with
Sijntgen, his aged mother. They were both well confirmed in the
faith; and continued in it amidst all solicitations and
sufferings, even unto death, which they, for the name of
Christ, had to suffer publicly; hence they shall also openly
praise the Lord; in the throne of heaven, and help sing the
glad new song, in honor of the Lamb, and'of, Him that sitteth
upon the throne. Rev. 14:3.</p>

<h2>FIERIJNTGEN. KETELS, LEENTGEN HER MOTHER, WITH PIERIJNTGEN AND MARIJNTGEN VAN MALE, IN TIDE YEAR A. D. 1564</h2> 

<p>In the same year four sisters of Christ were apprehended at
Ghent, namely, Pierijntgen Ketels, with Leentgen her mother,
and two sisters, Pier i j ntgen and Mari j ntgen van Male.
These did not counsel with flesh and blood, but with God, who
was able to strengthen them, for whose name they, after many
assaults and unwavering steadfastness, had to lay down their
lives in the monastery of St. Peter, without the city of Ghent.
Therefore they shall be crowned by the Young Man upon Mount
Sion, and be joyfully received by their bridegroom. II Esdras
2:46; Matt. 25:10.</p>

<h2>PIETER VAN DER MEULEN, A. D. 1564 .</h2> 

<p>Shortly afterwards, also one brother Pieter vdn der Meulen
contended so valiantly, at Ghent, for his faith in Christ,
that, with firm faith and confidence in God, he withstood all
who sought to turn</p>

</div><div id="668"> 

<p>him away from it, even unto death, so that he departed this
world, and went with Christ into peace and rest, to help judge
at the last day those who judged him here. Luke 23:43; I Cor.
6:2; Matt. 7:2:</p><br />

<h1>MAEYKEN BOOSERS BURNT TO ASHES FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, IN THE CITY OFDOORNICK, THE 18TH OF SEPTEMBER, A. D. 1564</h1>

<h2>A confession and letter of consolation of
Maeyken Boosers, imprisoned at Doornich, where she sealed her faith with her death</h2> 

<p>The eternal, unfathomable grace of God, and the power of the
Holy Ghost, be with you all, my beloved friends and brethren. I
let you know that I am well according to the flesh; but
according to the spirit I might be better, for I find weakness
in me; but my hope is fixed upon God, who strengthens the
feeble, and comforts the afflicted. My heart constantly longs
to be fit in His sight, that I might finish to His praise that
which He has commenced in me. Therefore I pray you, my beloved
brethren, not to forget me, even as I well perceive that you do
not, for which I thank you very much, and hope that the Lord
will preserve you in His holy truth. I further inform you that
the lords wanted to know of me, who were baptized with me, and
whether none were in the city, and what were their names and
surnames. I said, "What I do not know I cannot tell." But it was
all to no avail. They ordered the executioner to strip me. I
felt very much ashamed, and I pleasantly entreated them to
believe me; but it was of no avail. I then said, "Your will be
done," and undressed myself. They led me to the rack and bound
me to draw and rack me. The commissary said that I should name
them. I told him that I could not do it; whereupon they loosed
me, without my having named any one, for which God on, high be
praised. However of Pieter and George they had knowledge
already; hence I had to name them too, but their surnames I did
not know. Herewith I will commend you to the Lord, and to the
Word of His grace. May the Lord keep us all in one faith to the
end of our lives. Amen.</p>

<h2>Another letter from Maeyken Boosers to her parents</h2> 

<p>I greet you from my inmost heart, my beloved father and my
much beloved mother, with all that are in your house. Please
know that I am well and unchanged in purpose, the Lord be
praised forever, as I trust through the goodness of God it is
also with you. Further, I thank you heartily for the kind
greeting you wrote me, on account of which I greatly rejoiced,
learning your feelings and affection for me; and for
remembrance' sake I will write you something about my
imprisonment.</p>

<p>In the first place the commissary asked me how old I was
when I was baptized. I replied, "About twenty-three or four
years." They asked me why I had it done. I said, "Because God had commanded it." They
asked me whether I did not know that I had been baptized
previously. I said, "I know nothing of it; neither, has God commanded it." They
asked me whether I did not have sponsors. I replied, "It may
be;-they may have died." They then said that they should send
me learned men. I said, "You ought to be wise enough to talk
with me;" but no, they would send learned men. They then sent
the parish priest of our lady's church, who came and asked me
why I had not been in his church so long, and that he had not
known of me. I told him that I had quietly kept at home. They
asked me where my church was. I answered, "My church is not
known to you; for if you knew her, you would not let her in
peace very long."</p>

<p>We had many words about baptism. I said that Christ sent out
His apostles into all the world, and that they first taught all
nations to observe ail things whatsoever He had commanded them,
baptizing them in the name of the Father, of the Son, and of
the Holy Ghost. Infants cannot learn; but he that believeth and
is baptized shall be saved. Then they said that the apostles
had baptized whole households. I said, "Yes, then they rejoiced
that they were become believers in God; this children cannot
do. Acts 16:34. Christ called the children to Him and said that
to such belonged the kingdom of heaven, but He did not command
that they should be baptized." They then brought forward Adam's
sin, saying that they were born in it. I replied that Christ
had died for them. I asked them whether they meant to remove
sin by baptism; since infants can have no sin, therefore they
cannot die unto sin, and rise through baptism into a new life.
Then the lords said, "Your doctrine is: 'He that believeth and
is baptized shall be saved,' is it not?" I said, "Yes." They
then asked whether Christ was not of Mary's flesh. I said that
Mary had conceived Him of the Holy Ghost, even as the angel
said to,her."The Holy Ghost shall come upon thee, and the power
of the Highest shall overshadow thee: therefore also that holy
thing which shall be born of thee shall be called the Son of
God." Luke 1:35. They asked once more whether He did not assume
flesh from her, since He had not brought it from above. I
replied that I believed the testimony of John, where he
says, "The, Word became flesh, and dwelt among us." John 1:14.
They asked whether I did not believe that He is Mary's son
according to the flesh, and the Son of God according to the
spirit. I replied that He was God's own begotten and only
begotten 'Son, without beginning of days, nor end of life, and
was now at the last born of Mary, through the power of the Holy
Ghost. Heb. 7:3. Hence He is not of the earth, earthy, like
Adam, nor will He return to earth [dust]; for He is the Lord
from heaven. I Cor. 15:47. Now if He had flesh of our flesh, He
would have to see corruption, for God said, "Dust thou art, and
unto dust shalt thou return;" but</p>

</div><div id="669"> 

<p>this was not spoken of Adam alone, but of all his
descendants. Gen. 3:19.</p>

<p>They then asked me whether I did not believe that in the
sacrament there were Christ's flesh and blood. I said, "No; He
is ascended, and sits on the right hand of God His Father."
They then asked me whether I would not believe that all the
saints are in heaven. I said, "What I have not read I cannot
answer; but this much I have read; 'The souls of the righteous
are in the hand of God, and the torment of death shall not
touch them.'"</p>

<p>Wisdom 3:1. To this they did not say much, but asked what I
held with regard to Mary. I replied that she was a pure and
holy vessel, and blessed above all women, since she was worthy
to conceive and give birth to the Son of God.</p>

<p>They asked whether I did not confess that there is a
purgatory. I said, "I find two ways on record,</p>

<p>the one very broad and leading to damnation, the other very
narrow and leading to eternal life." They also asked what I
held in regard to the pope. I said, "The pope I do not know; but
if this is his doctrine, which is observed here, I hold him to
be like his doctrine." Much more was spoken, but I only write
this to while away time. Farewell.</p>

<h2>Another letter from Maeyken Boosers, to the brethren</h2> 

<p>My dearest and much beloved brethren in the Lord, I let you
know that my heart is of good cheer and courage, the Lord be
forever praised, for He preserves us by His right hand, and
delivers us out of the midst of our enemies, for without Him I
would be lost, since they, both spirituals and seculars, come
to assail me in manifold ways, as could be seen this Sunday,
when Mr. Massaert, with a judge and a secular, a learned man,
held me to be the vilest sect that ever was under heaven. But
when I told them my faith, I moved them all to tears, so that
they could scarcely speak, and ultimately left me in a friendly
manner.</p>

<p>No more for the present, except that I commend you to the
Lord; may He constantly keep and preserve you in His holy
truth. I hope it will soon be over with me; for I desire
nothing so much, than that I might please the Lord, and die a
blessed death. Amen.</p>

<h2>A testament from Maeyken Boosers to her
children</h2> 

<p>A heartfelt and affectionate greeting to you, my beloved
children. Give ear to your mother, who is now in bonds for the
truth; for it has pleased God, that all who will live godly
must suffer persecution. Hence I am well satisfied and of good
cheer, that the servant must follow his lord. His blessed will
be done with me; if it had been His pleasure, He would have
prevented these bonds. My dear children, it has been so from
the beginning, that the righteous must suffer, and that the
unrighteous always prevail. But their day shall soon come, that
they will lament and cry out in their distress, "Mountains, fall on us, and hills, cover us
from the face of the Lord." Luke 23:30. Alas! when the
righteous shall shine forth as the sun, and the ungodly shall
go into eternal fire. O beloved children, search the
Scriptures, and conform to~them, that you may hear the blessed
words, "Come, ye blessed, inherit the kingdom of my Father." Pray
the Lord for wisdom, and learn to fear God, and you will get
true understanding. Do not conform to the world, in pride,
dancing, running, and idle gossip; but evince by your walk a
godly life, adorn yourselves like the holy women, accept the
Scriptures and live according to them, that your souls may be
saved, and that we may meet hereafter. May the Almighty God,
the King of. kings, grant you His grace according to the riches
of His goodness, to be strengthened in the inner man, and that
Christ may dwell in your hearts; and may He guide you into all
truth. I pray you, my dear children, be peaceable among
yourselves, for this is a fruit of the Spirit. Willingly help
one another, without gainsaying, and always remember the poor;
communicate willingly of all that you have; make yourselves
friends of the mammon of unrighteousness; love that which is
eternal, and not what is temporal; seek the heavenly, and not
the earthly, for all flesh is as grass, and all the glory of
man as the flower of grass, which today is, and tomorrow is
cast into the oven; the glory of man perisheth, but the Word of
the Lord abideth forever. Isa. 40:6. Love not the world,
neither the things that are in it, namely, the lust of the
eyes, and the pride of life, which are not of God, but of the
world; and the world shall perish, with all that is in it; but
he that doeth the will of the Father abideth forever. I John
2:15; I Cor. 7:31.</p>

<p>My children, do according to the will of the Lord; I, your
mother, hope to walk the way before you. Mark wherein and how I
go before you, and regard not the honor of the world, but
esteem it an honor, to suffer for the name of our God. For He
who was King over all was not ashamed to leave His glory, and
came into the world, and suffered the most ignominious death
for us, and, though He was innocent, was beaten and marred,
that there remained not one sound spot on His blessed body.
Thus did He love us, thereby leaving us an example that we
should follow His steps. He is the light that came into the
world, that all who follow Him should not walk in darkness, but
have the light of life. John 8:12. The Lord grant that that
light shine also around you, and that you walk in it. Amen.</p>

<h2>Another, short letter from said mother to her children</h2> 

<p>My children, I greet you most cordially, and send you back
your letters, that you may fulfill the promises you therein
made to me. Always be subject to those who instruct you in
righteousness, and reprove you when you transgress. Farewell,
and</p>

</div><div id="670"> 

<p>herewith adieu to you in this world. My dear children, fear
God, and eschew all evil.</p>

<h2>Another letter from Maeyken Boosers, to her
father and mother</h2> 

<p>My most beloved father and mother, I commend myself to you
from my inmost heart, praying the Lord that He will comfort you
and me with the consolation of the Holy Ghost-the promise of
the Lord, whom He promised to send to His disciples, saying, "I
go unto the Father, and shall send you another Comforter, whom
the world cannot receive, for it knoweth him not." John 14:16,
17. Hence, my dear father and mother, be of good cheer and
await with patience what the Lord wills to do with me. I, too,
wait patiently for His comfort. What has passed I esteem not
more than a breath of air, and it gives me no trouble, the
Lord, in whom I hope, be praised; for He it is who comforts the
humble, and puts down the proud from their seats. Luke 1:52.
Though there is now tribulation before us, yet we know full
well that the day of the Lord will soon come, and that all
ungodliness will be brought to nought. And God shall judge them
without respect of persons, and reward every one according to
his works. Therefore, my dear and much beloved father and
mother, worry not on my account; let the Lord finish His work.
I hope that He has predestinated me poor unworthy one for an
offering acceptable unto Him, for I have hoped in His mercy;
and that He will not enter into judgment with me, for if He
should judge me according to my deserts, I should be worthy of
eternal death; but the Lord, I hope, will have mercy upon
me.</p>

<p>I further let you know that I was brought before the dean
once more, but neither of us yielded, and as he was leaving he
said to me, "If you persist in this belief, you are eternally
damned." I said, "How can you speak so? seeing God shall
judge.""Yes," said he,"I dare indeed say it, for it will be
so." Then Master Klaes followed me and asked, "Where have you
kept yourself so long? I have long sought you." I replied, "You
have me now, sure.""I have not," he said;"If you were in our
hands, we should keep you longer than these will, I think."
Herewith, my dear father and mother, I will commend you to the
Lord; may He preserve you and me unto the end. Grieve not for
me, but rejoice that the Lord counts me worthy; for I will
cheerfully resign for His sake these my members, which He has
given me. Farewell always.</p>

<h2>Another letter from Maeyken Boosers to her
brethren and sisters</h2> 

<p>O my dearest and much beloved brethren and sisters in the
Lord, I greet you once more with the peace of the Lord, that
the same may remain with you forever. Amen.</p>

<p>I let you know that these my enemies still keep tormentine
me about baDtiSm:but of the incarna tion of Christ they say nothing to me. The dean told them my
faith, and they asked me nothing except whether I believed that
Christ was David's son. I replied that He was the Son of the
living God."Oh! ohl" said the dean. The lords asked, "Is it not
written: 'Out of the seed of David according to the flesh'?"
Acts 13:23. The dean answered them, for there was no hearing;
he frequently told me I lied, because I withstood him, that he
could not show me that the apostles had baptized children. They
all fell upon me at once, and said that no one could enter the
kingdom of heaven, except he were born of water and of the
Spirit. They hastily asked me whether I did not confess this
too. I said, "This Scripture belongs not to children, but to the
adult, who have ears to hear." Then they arose and said, "You
labor under an opinion."</p>

<p>Thus, my dear friends, I expect to be brought before them
once more tomorrow. Hence I pray you to entreat the Lord for
me, that He would direct my mouth to His praise and glory.
Herewith I will commend you forever into the hands of God, and
kindly ask you to receive my simple writing in good part, for I
seek nothing but to please God, from the simplicity of my
heart; and I wish nothing, alas! save, that I might please the
King of kings and Lord of lords in my calling; then I should
indeed have been born at a blessed time. Herewith peace;
farewell; nothing more after this. Take this for an eternal
adieu.</p>

<p>After this, Maeyken Boosers was burnt to ashes, at Doornick,
having commended her soul into the hands of the Lord.</p>

<h2>WILLEBOORT CORNELISS, PUT TO DEATH FOR THE EVANGELICAL TRUTH, AT MIDDELBORGH IN ZEALAND, THE 14TH OF SEPTEMBER, IN THE YEAR 1564</h2> 

<p class="c25">A letter of Willeboort Corneliss, written from
his imprisonment at Middelborgh, and which he sealed with his blood</p>

<p>The grace and peace of God the heavenly Father, which have
come to us through Jesus Christ, His only Son, our Lord,
comfort you in all your tribulation, my dearest sister in the
Lord; and the Holy Ghost guide you into all truth and
righteousness unto the end; and the mighty hand of God keep you
and me in the straight way, that we may walk aright unto the
end. Amen.</p>

<p>For, my dearest and beloved sister in the Lord, in this
miserable and sorrowful world we are counted a prey to every
one, as the prophet tells us. Isaiah 59:15. Yea, Christ Jesus
Himself says, "Ye shall be hated of all men for my name's sake." Matthew
10:22. Yea, we are counted as deceivers, and yet are true; we
are become a spectacle; we are troubled on every side, yet not
distressed; we are perplexed, but not in despair; persecuted,
but not forsaken; cast down, but not destroyed. II Cor. 6:8: 1
Corinthians 4:9: 11 Cor. 4:8. 9. We are</p>

</div><div id="671"> 

<p>accounted as sheep for the slaughter; but in all these
things we are more than conquerors through Him that loved us.
Rom. 8:36, 37. For, my dear lamb, we know that we must through
much tribulation and suffering enter into the kingdom of
heaven; knowing that, whilst we are at home in the body, we are
absent from the Lord. Acts 14: 22; II Cor. 5:6. Hence Peter
says, "I beseech you as strangers and pilgrims, abstain from
fleshly lusts, which war against the soul." I Pet. 2:11.
Therefore, my dear lamb, though you have now with Abraham left
our fatherland, be therefore not slothful in your business; but
be fervent in spirit; redeeming the time; rejoicing in hope;
patient in tribulation: continuing instant in prayer;
distributing to the necessity of saints;' and see that you are
given to hospitality. Romans 12:11-13. For, my dear lamb,
though our outward man perish, yet the inward man is renewed
day by day."For our light affliction, which is but for a
moment, worketh for us a far more exceeding and eternal weight
of glory; while we look not at the things which are seen, but
at the things which are not seen." II Cor. 4:16.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear sister, look constantly unto Jesus the
author and finisher of our faith; who for the joy that was set
before Him endured the cross, despising the shame. Consider Him
that endured such contradiction of sinners against Himself,
lest you be wearied in your distress, and faint in your mind.
For whom the Lord loveth He chasteneth, and scourgeth every son
whom He loveth, and receiveth. Heb. 12:2, etc. For our Saviour
Himself suffered so much for our sakes that Isaiah may well
say, "He hath no form nor comeliness; and when we shall see him,
there is no beauty that we should desire him. He is despised
and rejected of men; a man of sorrows, and acquainted with
grief: and we hid as it were our faces from him." Isa. 53:2, 3.
So that He may well say through the prophet, "They gave me gall
for my meat; and in my thirst they gave me gall and vinegar to
drink; and all men laugh me to scorn; they shoot out the lip,
and shake the head." Yea, as He says through the prophet, "I am
a worm, and no man; a reproach of men, and despised of the
people." Ps. 69:21; 22:7, 6.</p>

<p>My dear sister in the Lord, if the head thus suffered, the
members must follow. Grieve not that you must wander about yet
in this world or wilderness.; for it is God which worketh in
you both to will and to do, according to the good purpose of
your mind. Phil. 2:13. My dear lamb, always let your light
shine among this wicked and perverse generation, that, whereas
they speak against you as evildoers, they may by your good
works, which they shall behold, glorify God in the day of
visitation. I Peter 2:12.</p>

<p>My dearest sister in the Lord, wait patiently for the time;
be patient unto the coming of our Lord. Behold, the husbandman
waiteth for the precious fruit of the earth, and hath long
patience for it, until he receive the early and latter rain. Therefore be
patient, and stablish your heart; for the coming of the Lord
draweth nigh. My dear sister, you have heard of the patience of
job, and have seen the end of the Lord; that the Lord is very
pitiful, and of tender mercy. Jas. 5:7, etc.</p>

<p>My dear lamb, let us keep unto the end that which we have;
He is faithful that promised it us. Heb. .10:23. My dear
sister, humble yourself always; cast all your care upon Him,
for He cares for you, and for us all (I Peter 5:6, 7); for we
know our reward beforehand, if we hold fast His commandments
unto the end, according to our weakness, and we wait for it
with patience. Hence Paul says that love is the bond of
perfectness. Col. 3:14. And Peter says, "Have perfect charity
among yourselves: for charity shall cover the multitude of
sins." I Pet. 4:8. My dear sister in the Lord, though we must
now be the laughing stock of the world, and wander about in
foreign lands, we will be none the worse for it when the Lord
shall say, ".Come, ye blessed of my Father, inherit the kingdom
prepared for you from the foundation of the world" Matt. 25:34.
Then shall the child be born; then there shall be no more
reviling; then shall all our enemies be conquered; then shall
the tears be wiped from our eyes; then shall no harm happen to
us any more; then shall we drink of the fountain of life,
without price; for whatsoever things were written for our
learning, that we through patience and comfort of the
Scriptures might have before. Rom. 15:4.</p>

<p>The God of patience and consolation grant you to be
likeminded one toward another according to Christ Jesus: that
ye may with one mind and one mouth glorify .God, even the
Father of our Lord Jesus -Christ. Wherefore receive ye one
another, as Christ also .received us, to the glory of God, the
Father of the Lord Jesus Christ. Amen. Farewell, my dear sister
in the Lord. Amen.</p>

<p>By me, WILLEBOORT CORNELISS.</p>

<p>Written in bonds.</p>

<h2>PRIJNTGEN AND MARTIJNTGEN MAELBOUTS, IN THE YEAR 1564</h2> 

<p>On the 12th of November A. D. 1564, there was beheaded with
the sword, at Ghent in Flanders, one Prijntgen Maelbouts, widow
of Jacob de Backer, brother of Pauwels van Meenen, and with
her, her sister, Martijntgen Maelbouts, a young girl, a native
of Thielt; not for any reported evil deeds, but simply for the
testimony of our Lord Jesus Christ, in a good conscience, since
they, according to the teaching of the holy Scriptures, had
separated from the papal church of antichrist-as being polluted
with much uncleanness of the impure works of darkness, and the
doctrines and commandments of men, militating against the holy
Word of the Lord-and united with the true members of Christ,
and sought with them, according to their weak ability, to
observe the commandments and</p>

</div><div id="672"> 

<p>ordinances of their Lord. On this account the persecutors
and enemies of the truth deprived them of their lives, which,
to please their Lord and redeemer, they willingly resigned, in
the living hope and firm faith, that at the resurrection of the
just, they should receive back into great glory these their
corruptible members, which they here resigned for His name's
sake, and reign with God and His saints in eternity. II
Maccabees 7:11, 14; 1 Cor. 15:43.</p><br />

 

<h1>MR. JELIS MATTHIJSS, PUT TO DEATH FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, AT MIDDELBORGH, IN THE YEAR A. D. 1564</h1>

<h2>A letter of Mr. Jelis Matthijss, written in
prison, at Middleborgh, A. D. 1564, where he
laid down his life for the name of the Lord</h2> 

<p><i>The foundation of God standeth sure.-II Timothy</i>
2:19.</p>

<p>Grace, peace, and the abundant love of our God, with the
deep and unspeakable love of His Song our Lord Jesus Christ,
and the chosen gift of faith, are revealed to us by God, the
merciful dear Father, through Christ Jesus, and given' to His
saints, whom He, through His fatherly love, has now chosen,
called and ordained thereto, yea, delivered from the chains and
heavy bonds of the perpetual darkness of unbelief, with which
this evil, wicked and perverse world is bound; and has,
according to His fatherly mercy, begotten us again unto a
living, saving hope, and translated us into the kingdom of His
dear Son, in whom we have the forgiveness of our sins through
His blood, that we my dear sheep, should henceforth serve Him
without fear in all obedience, righteousness and holiness, all
the days of our life. I Peter 1:3; Col. 1:13, 14; Luke 1:74,
75. To this end may the merciful dear Father help and
strengthen us with the power of His Holy Spirit. Amen.</p>

<p>Since you people have requested me, through your letter, and
through greetings heard from you at different itimes, as also
previously, by the letter of your dead wife, who also requested
the same of me [to write], know that I have frequently purposed
in my heart to do so according to my little gift, although I
trust it is not really necessary, yet I hope that it will
nevertheless assure and confirm you the more. But as I had
rather much writing to do, and was engaged also with other
matters, I could not very well attend to it; yet I have
constantly cherished a father's care for you, frequently
beseeching my God with a fervent heart, according to my
weakness, that He would preserve you both, under the shadow of
His wings, in this horrible and perilous time full of all
wickedness, and fill you more and more with His Holy Spirit,
and open the eyes of your understanding, that you, my dear
sheep, may learn to know well the snares and outspread nets of
the devil, which he now in so manifold ways daily lays for the regenerated, though you are
not ignorant of them partly, well knowing his devices;
wherefore you have watched until the present time, in which I
greatly rejoice, as also in this, that your faith grows and
increases in the knowledge of our Lord Jesus Christ, unto whom
I have begotten you and the others, in my bonds, by tears, with
the power of the Holy Ghost. And you became followers of me,
and of the Lord, and received the Word of the Gospel of the
cross of Christ with much sighing and godly sorrow, and have
obeyed it from the heart, in the form of the doctrine wherein
you now stand, so that you have become ensamples to all those
in Middelborgh, who want to amend their lives, and take up the
cross of the Lord. I Thessalonians 1:6, 7. Not only these, but
many saints are made to rejoice, beholding your obedience and
humility in the fear of your God, which, I hope will increase
and become manifest still more from day to day, so that, my
dear sheep, it may be clearly evident, that you are truly born
again from above, of God the Father, and renewed by the
renewing of your mind. Rom. 12:2. Remember that your
conversation must be heavenly, namely, according to the new
man, who after God is created in all manner of righteousness
and holiness; for since He who has called and chosen you to
this service is holy, you must also according to your ability,
lead a holy, chaste and godly life in the fear of your God.
Eph. 4:24; I Peter 1:15. For to whom we have yielded ourselves,
his servants we are, as the apostle says: whether of sin unto
death, or of obedience unto life. Rom. 6:16. God be praised and
thanked forever, my dear sheep, that you were the servant and
handmaid of sin, but are now washed and cleansed with me, by
the washing of regeneration, and renewing of the Holy Ghost,
whom God the Father shed on us abundantly through Christ our
Saviour, not for the works of our righteousness which we had
done; for we were by nature the children of wrath, even as
others; but God, the merciful, dear Father, who is rich in
mercy, for His great love wherewith He loved us, when we were
dead in sins and unrighteousness, quickened us together with
Christ, or by Christ, His dear Son, through faith. Tit. 3:5;
Eph. 2:3, etc.</p>

<p>Therefore, my affectionately beloved sheep in Christ Jesus,
whose souls I love from the heart, and for whom I have a
fatherly and godly care, I admonish and beseech you as a
prisoner in the Lord, frequently to call to remembrance the day
in which the merciful dear Father had compassion upon you, and
took the vail from your eyes and hearts, which still hangs
before the eyes and hearts of so many thousands, who walk such
hard ways and know not the way of the Lord, becau e they are
drunken with the wine of the Babylon' n whore, namely, the
false doctrines, by which he whole earth is covered; but you,
my sheep, ave become sober, and come out of her, and I also
hope that you will no more touch her uncleanness, lest</p>

</div><div id="673"> 

<p>you perish with her plagues. II Cor. 3:16; Wisd. 5:7; Rev.
17:2; 18:4.</p>

<p>Hence watch sharply in righteousness, so that you, my dear
sheep, be not put to confusion after my departure in this
horrible and perilous time, for you can plainly see and hear
that now is certainly the time of which Christ Jesus and His
holy apostles have so diligently warned us, even as Christ
Himself said that the love of many should wax cold. But he that
shall endure unto the end, the same shall be saved. Matt.
24:12, 13. O my dear sheep, ponder the words of Christ, and let
them lodge in your hearts. It is indeed not spoken with regard
to the world; for in the world the love of God cannot wax cold,
since it has not received it, neither knows it; but it is
spoken with reference to the true Israelites. And you see that
this happens abundantly among them, which is certainly a
lamentable matter, as that the devil and spirit of the old
serpent has gained such strength and power in the present time,
through the manifold, subtle and dexterous snares which he
daily lays, to capture anew in his net of unbelief the souls of
the regenerated, who have escaped him through the knowledge of
God, whom he does capture again, my dear sheep, some of them
through false doctrine, not only through the Roman antichrist,
since now there are many antichrists in the world. For this
reason he has put on another.cap, which is no longer like the
Roman, well knowing that his game with it will soon be played;
hence he has transformed himself, and appears now as an angel
of light, and does his diligence to mingle with the children of
light, there to set forth his wares anew. For, my dear sheep in
the Lord, formerly he came with human ordinances and
commandments, but now he knows that men want to hear Scripture;
hence he now comes adducing many Scriptures, so that it seems
to be all right, even as he presumptuously did with Christ,
quoting to Him from the prophet David, that it was written that
He [God] should send His angels, who should bear Him up in
their hands, lest He should dash His foot against a stone.
Matt. 4:6; Ps. 91:12. See, my dear sheep, he did indeed quote
Scripture, just as it read; but it had not been spoken or
prophesied with any such meaning; thus these also, though they
quote many Scriptures, and presumptuously say, "Thus it is
certainly written; by which he easily captures in his outspread
net the wavering and those whose ears itch to hear something
new."</p>

<p>Others he gets through deceitful riches that come to them,
which bring men into destruction and perdition, since
covetousness is the root of all evil. I Tim. 6:9, 10.
Nevertheless, some yet desire that their temporal possessions
increase, and are so busily engaged therewith, that in the
meantime they forget the exercise of godliness, and bring upon
themselves many sorrows. Alas, my dear lamb, it shall go with
them as it went with certain of the Israelites; they that had
gathered much had nothing over; and they that had gathered
little had no lack. Ex. 16:18. Hence, if we have food and raiment, O
that we could therewith be content; for we brought nothing into
this world, and it is certain we can carry nothing out. I Tim.
6:7. For we see, dear sheep, that the words of our dear Lord
Jesus Christ are true, namely, that the deceitful riches choke
and suppress the good seed, namely, the Word of God, whereby
many also come to shame.</p>

<p>The third class [he deceives], through the loss or spoiling
of their goods, who do not rightly consider that, like the
merchantman, they have found the most beautiful pearl, which is
certainly well worthy of all this, and far above comparison
with it. The fourth, through crosses and suffering, namely,
persecution. The fifth, through the entreaties and
solicitations, of father and mother, friends and relatives. The
sixth, through wife and children. The seventh, by their own
evil, subtle flesh. The eighth, because they become weary of
the way of righteousness, and turn back to Egypt and Sodom, to
live at ease and peace for a short time with the Babylonian
whore, and afterwards to be tormented with her in everlasting
pain.</p>

<p>Behold, my most chosen and beloved sheep, all this is
wrought and set in motion by a single spirit, the old serpent,
who neither sleeps nor slumbers, but constantly walks about us,
seeking whom he may devour: I Pet. 5:8. Hence resist him
manfully and with a believing heart, and let it not terrify
you, though they so lightly forsake the commandments of the
Lord. Oh, regard not the negligent, slothful and unfaithful;
but let all faithless servants and false disciples forsake
their Lord and Master, yet we hope nevertheless to adhere to
Him, and you with me, and are ready to suffer whatever He
imposes upon us. Ahl what should we do or undertake, if we
should forsake His commandments? whither should we flee, where
He should not find us? Oh! heaven and earth must obey Him with
trembling; mountains and caverns must quake before Him, and can
not stand in His presence; how much more the children of men,
who dwell in houses of clay. Ps. 114:7; Job 4:19. O my dear
sheep, wherewith shall they excuse or justify themselves when
He shall visit them, who now so unfaithfully depart from
Him?</p>

<p>Alas! alas I it is indeed a lamentable matter, that they
have conceived such a loathing for the noble heavenly bread,
and that the only medicine by which all the souls of the
regenerated have been restored, is become such a deadly enemy
to them. Yea, my dear sheep, we may well sigh and lament with
the prophet over the destruction of Israel, and over Jerusalem
the fair city of God, and this the more because so many
Israelites drift into the wilderness of this wicked world, and
are again destroyed and slain by the subtle spirit of the
serpent. Also, because some of the watchmen are become
apostates, and the citizens of Jerusalem, too, are becoming
slothful and drowsy, though he who walks around the camp
neither rests nor pauses,</p>

</div><div id="674"> 

<p>but diligently seeks day and night, whom he may find idle or
sleepy, to sow his tares into the field of the heart, even as
he, alas! did not a little in my time, and will still do, the
longer the more, according to my opinion. For the more the
people of God increase, the more will he reign among them; nor
will he rest until he succeed in getting some of them to submit
to his will again; and God permits him to torment the pious,
and also to seduce them, that the others may be tried. See, my
dearest and much beloved children in the Lord, it i's therefore
my fatherly entreaty and humble request of you, for the sake of
the eternal salvation of your souls, that you will henceforth
exercise great care that you may remain in the way of
righteousness, and always be mindful how you from this time on
ought to walk in the house of God, which is the church of God,
unto which you have come, whereof I was very glad, when I heard
it, and thanked and praised my God for His great fatherly
goodness and grace which He has shown you, and has received you
as His son and daughter, yea, as heirs of His heavenly riches,
on which account. you have so voluntarily betaken yourselves
under the yoke and rod of the cross, and, with the holy apostle
Paul, counted your- gain loss, that you might gain your souls
in Christ, even as you have done. Hence, take heed to
yourselves, and depart or waver neither to the right nor to the
left, lest you fall from your own steadfastness, and eternal
fire be your inheritance; but as you, my dear sheep, have now
put on the Lord Jesus Christ, so continue to walk in Him, and
remain firmly established and rooted in His doctrine, lest you
wax cold or lukewarm in love, and thus lose what you have
received and so willingly accepted. II Peter 3:17; Col. 2:6; I
Cor. 4:7.</p>

<p>I also beseech you, by the mercy of our dear Lord Jesus
Christ, that you neglect not, to thank and praise God the
merciful dear Father day and night, through Christ His dear
Son, for the great, unspeakable benefits which He has shown us
poor, miserable creatures; and has foreseen and chosen us from
our mother's womb, and this to the end that we should truly
live and confess His name among this wicked and adulterous
generation, and thus may hold fast unto the end, the beginning
of the Christian life. For though, my dearest sheep and much
beloved children, you are now become true heirs of eternal
life, through obedience to the Gospel, and are written with me
and all saints in the book of life, yea, have been brought to
an innumerable company of angels, yet, O my dear sheep, he can
soon blot us out again, and write our apostate names in the
earth (Jer. 17:13), if we do not faithfully, according to our
weakness, walk in God's commandments unto the end of our lives;
for we know that the glorious promises given to the pious, and
the crown of eternal life, lie neither in the beginning nor in
the middle; but he that endures, and continues faithful unto
the end, shall receive the same from the hand of the Lord.
For it is evident, that it availed the outward Israel (in whom
we have a clear example) nothing, my dear sheep, that they by
the strong hand of the Lord, had been delivered out of Egypt
from the service and bondage of Pharaoh; yea, all the benefits
shown them on the way by the faithful, merciful dear Father,
were certainly for the most part lost or in vain. Though He fed
them with angels' food, and gave them all that their soul
desired, yet they became impatient and murmured, and did not
receive their trial in the fear of God, or in patience,
wherefore the Lord was wroth, and destroyed twenty-three
thousand at one time. O my dear, chosen sheep, think on it; it
certainly occurred for our instruction and admonition, as the
holy apostle says, that we should not fall into the same
example of unbelief;for what could it avail us, that we have
now also gone out from spiritual Egypt and Sodom, and been
delivered from the service of the hellish Pharaoh, through the
Red Sea of the blood of Christ Jesus, and been baptized in the
name of the Father, of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost, upon the
confession of our faith, and have thus, having renounced our
own selves, entered into the true Noah's ark-Christ Jesus. O my
dear sheep, it all cannot avail or save us, if we do not
observe the fulfilling of the commandments of our God; for the
apostle John says, "He that saith, I know God, and keepeth not
his commandments, is a liar, and the truth is not in him." I
John 2:4. But you, my most beloved, have always obeyed not only
in my, presence, but much more in my absence; therefore work
out your salvation with fear, and constantly walk as becomes
the Gospel of our Lord Jesus Christ, after my departure, that
you may always stand fast in one spirit and mind; and be not
terrified in any wise by your adversaries, whether from within
or without, which is to them an evident token of perdition, but
to you of eternal salvation, and that of God. For, my dear
sheep, it is not enough that you believe on Christ, but you
must also suffer for His name, if not in bonds or imprisonment,
then in the daily conflict and temptations, which at the
present time arise in many and various forms, and may come upon
you still more. Phil. 2:12; 1:27. For God proves and tries His
chosen in manifold ways. Bonds and imprisonment are regarded as
the greatest trials of faith; but, my dear lamb, I write and
confess to you at this time, that to me it is the least,
compared with the perils and temptations I tasted and met with
in the wilderness of this world, or which I saw before me, so
that I often did not know which way to turn, for anxiety of
heart and spirit, and sighed and wept to my God on account of
the manifold subtle and adroit snares which the old serpent is
now laying, fearing that I might yet become entangled in her
snares of human weakness, and of the wisdom of my own flesh,
because I saw and heard that such high, strong and firmly
rooted trees were completely torn up by the roots, and such
lofty mountains brought low most miserably. Besides,</p>

</div><div id="675"> 

<p>I felt that in me there dwelt no good thing; moreover, I
considered that at His righteous day much chaff will be found,
when He will look over His own. O then He will see those who
will not have on a wedding garment.</p>

<p>For this reason also I was in great anxiety, fearing that
through my daily mistakes and polluted walk I should not be
able to stand at His coming; hence I often besought Him with
tears, that through His fatherly mercy He would make me, poor,
miserable man, fit, that I might suffer for His name's sake, to
go into bonds and imprisonment, and even into death, for His
holy testimony;-- then I should be sure of my soul's salvation,
and not fear to come to shame in the day of His wrath, whereto
He, through His fatherly mercy, has now chosen me and made me
worthy, to declare His holy testimony before this evil and
adulterous generation, in my bonds; on which account I am
greatly rejoiced in my soul, and sincerely regret that I cannot
thank or praise my and our merciful dear Father enqugh. for His
unspeakably great benefits which He has shown and is still
daily showing me miserable creature; for I trust in His
fatherly grace and mercy,' that He will further fit me and make
me worthy to go into death for His holy testimony; for He knows
that I have for a long time. longed to be at home, and this on
account of the manifold dangers I behold in the way. Hence, my
affectionately beloved sheep in the Lord, as I still have a
fatherly care for you, and love you with a godly love, I cannot
forbear, seeing I am still in this tabernacle for a little
while, to admonish you a little by my writing, praying you not
to think that I rule over you; but I seek to build you up with
all kindness unto the full stature of the fullness of Christ,
so that you, my dear sheep, may be found a true letter of
Christ, not written with ink on paper, but by the Holy Spirit
of the living God, whereby you are also sealed unto the day of
your redemption, who has written God's statutes and laws into
your hearts and minds, whereby you are now become an epistle of
Christ, which is seen and read by all men who behold your holy,
chaste conversation in the humility of your heart and
depreciation of yourselves. II Cor, 3:2; I Pet. 3:2.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear lamb, I beseech you once more, though you
are humble, humble yourselves still more; though you are clean,
cleanse yourselves yet more; yea, though you have become holy,
sanctify yourselves yet more and more, that you may be found
pure and blameless, the children of God, in the midst of this
crooked and perverse generation, among whom you shine as lights
in the world, holding forth the word of life; that I may
rejoice in the day of Christ, so that I may not have labored in
vain with you; for though I am to be offered up, and the time
of my departure is at hand, yet I joy and rejoice in my heart,
on your account, and of the others whom I have begotten in my
bonds, who in time past were unprofitable to the house of God,
but are now useful and profitable, whom I love for the truth's sake, and desire that they shall
also have a part herein, hoping that it will also rejoice them
in the spirit and faith, for an assurance and confirmation of
all your minds in Christ Jesus. John 15:3; Rev. 22:11; Phil:
2:15; II Tim. 4:6; Philem. 10, 11; II Jno. 1, 2. Hence, my
final and affectionate request to you all is, that you love one
another with a pure heart fervently, being born again, not of
corruptible seed, but of incorruptible, namely, by the living,
powerful and saving Word. John 13:34; I Pet. 1:22, 23. And
remember the words of Paul our fellow brother, where he
says, "The end of the commandment is charity out of a pure
heart, and of a good conscience; yea, it is the bond of
perfectness." I Tim. 1:5; -Col. 3:14. O how blessed is he who
is truly girded about with this bond; for he does not live unto
himself, but unto his Lord; and he observes the words of Christ
in everything, also where He says, "Be merciful, as your
heavenly Father also is merciful." Luke 6:36.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear sheep, I beseech you yet, by the mercy of our
dear Lord Jesus Christ, and also for the sake of the eternal
salvation of your souls, that you forget not to do good and to
communicate; for the administration of this service supplieth
not only the want of the saints, but is abundant also by many
thanksgivings unto God; for by such offerings God is pleased.
II Cor. 9:12. Remember also the words of the wise man, where he
says:'"He that hath pity upon the poor lendeth unto the Lord:
and that which he hath given will he pay him again." Proverbs
19:17. He further says, "He that giveth unto the poor shall
suffer no sorrow; but he that turneth away his eyes shall
decrease." 28:27."The righteous useth his wealth to life, but
the wicked useth it to sin." 10:16. He also says, "There is that
scattereth, and yet increaseth; and there is that withholdeth
more than is meet, but it tendeth to poverty." 11:24.
Tobit,.also, commands his son to remember the poor,
saying, "Turn not thy face from the poor, and the face of God
shall not be turned away from thee. Wherever thou be able, help
the needy. If thou hast abundance, give alms accordingly; if
thou have but little, give according to that little with a
faithful heart." And he adds, "For alms deliver from death, and blot out sin." Tob. 4:7.
With regard to this, also Sirach says, "Alms maketh an atonement for sin." Sir. 3:30. Alms also
preserve the giver in everlasting habitations; wherefore Christ
commanded, "Make to yourselves friends of the mamman of
unrighteousness; that, when ye fail, they may receive you into
everlasting habitations." Luke 16:9.</p>

<p>Christ has well said, "For the poor always ye have with you."
John 12:8. Hence He shall say at His righteous day, "All that ye
have done unto the least of these my brethren, ye have done
unto me." Matt. 25:40: From this it follows, my dear sheep,
that the words of Paul will also be verified, namely, "He which
soweth sparingly (here) shall reap also sparingly; and he which
soweth bounti-</p></div><div id="
 676"> 

<p>fully shall reap also bountifully . . for God loveth a
cheerful giver." II Cor. 9:6, 7. My affectionately beloved
sheep in the Lord, though I thus write, I nevertheless know
that you are taught of God and His Holy Spirit, and that this
will do more for you than all I can write; yet, from heartfelt
Christian love, I write it to you; for the reason, that you may
remember the former times, when you were so diligent in all
manner of unrighteousness, sparing no expense in the way of
numerous costly banquets or feasts, yea, in pomp and display,
which God abominates. Oh, think once, my dear sheep, what
delight you then took [in these things]. Oh, should you now not
give the much more diligence in the things which God has
commanded you, to lay up treasures in heaven, where neither
moth nor rust doth corrupt. Oh, we should be able now to spare
a bit of money occasionally, to give to poor saints, just as
easily as we formerly could provide large amounts, to spend in
unrighteousness. O my dear, beloved children, I do not write
this to oppress your hearts, but that your love may increase
yet more and more from day to day: for you know not how much
time you will have yet, or when robbers may get possession of
your treasure. Further, my faithful sheep, it is my fatherly
request, that you live together in peace, harmony and unity.
Help to bear in love one another's burdens, since you know not
how long you will live together; and remember that you are
called children of peace, since your King and Prince is the
King and Prince of Peace (Isa. 9:6); hence you must be found
children of peace, as I also trust you are, though I thus
write.</p>

<p>Herewith I will commend you to the great Shepherd of the
sheep, who, I faithfully trust, will keep you under the shadow
of His wings; if you only continue in His statutes .and
commandments, and depart on no account out of His hand, then I
am certain that no one shall pluck you out of His hand. Once
more I beseech you, and this by the wounds of our dear Lord
Jesus Christ, and also for the sake of the eternal salvation of
your souls, that you will take to heart my letter and faithful
admonition written at the close of my life; and do not let it
lie unused among you after my departure, nor look upon it then
as a dead history or fable; but receive it as a testament, and
let it be a perpetual memorial to you, and remember me by it,
how I was an example unto you, according to my weakness, and
follow my footsteps which I trust to walk before you through
the power of my God, namely, to adhere to the truth unto the
end, to testify to you and to all who seek to fear God with a
pure heart, that this is the true grace of our God, as Peter
says, yea, the sure road and highway to eternal life; wherein
you now stand. I Pet. 5:12; Ps. 25. Hence, let no one divert
you from your present purpose, or cause you to waver, but give
more and diligence to make your calling and election sure. Oh,
if you do these things, my dear sheep, you shall never fall;
but an entrance shall be ministered unto you abundantly into
the everlasting kingdom of our Lord Jesus Christ. II Peter 1:lU,
11. Watch rigidly therefore in righteousness all the days of
your life; for it is necessary indeed. I also kindly request
that you receive this prescription in love; for I have
certainly written it out of Christian love. Herewith I want to
bid you all adieu, until in eternity. Amen.</p>

<p>Furthermore, my affectionately beloved sheep in the Lord, as
regards how it is with me and my fellow combatants, know that
it still tends to the promotion of the Gospel. Know also, that
the Lord faithfully succors me in my conflict and defense, and
has given me strength to gain the victory, and delivered me out
of the mouth of hell, and the teeth of the lions. I believe I
have been in combat with them ten or twelve times; the others,
however, they did not torment so much. In short, I hope that
the fight is fought, the course finished, the life [faith]
kept. Henceforth there is laid up for me the crown of glory,
which, I hope, no creature shall ever take from me; for
faithful is He that has begun this good work in me; He will
doubtless help me finish it, according to the good purpose of
my heart, so that I may pass through Jordan unharmed. Phil.
1:6. May God grant us His grace. Amen.</p>

<p>Communicate this among yourselves. commend it to God,
meditate upon it diligently, understand it wisely. Oh, if you
do this, it will be evident that you seek your salvation and
esteem my letter.</p>

<p>Finished the 6th of October, in the twenty-third month of my
imprisonment. Once more, my dear children, valiantly adhere
together to the cross of Christ, and do not depart from it.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER LETTER FROM MR. JELIS MATTHIJSS, WHICH HE WROTE TO HIS WIFE</h2> 

<p>I wish unto my flesh and blood, strength of spirit and a
steadfast mind in all her tribulation and severe distress.
Amen.</p>

<p>My dear and beloved wife, whom I wedded before God and His
church, as the time of my departure is now at hand, may you
people know that my heart and mind are concerned about you,
being indeed desirous of writing you something, but having so
ill an opportunity for it, because it stands thus with us that
we are now watched and guarded by eight or ten servants, so
that I feel little strength of spirit in me, to write anything
to you, love, as it comes upon us so unexpectedly, since we had
not heard a word. Willeboort, my faithful comrade, had partly
undressed already, when our host and hostess came up stairs,
saying, "Mr. Jelis and Willeboort, come down." When we came
down, we saw the stadtholder, and the bailiff also came and
upbraided us with this, whereupon I had a few words with him.
In short, my dearly beloved chosen flesh and blood, I shall now
go the way of all the prophets and witnesses of our dear Lord
Jesus Christ, in which I greatly rejoice and am of good cheer
at the present time; yea, I find such joy and comfort in me,
that I cannot well describe it to you,</p>

</div><div id="677"> 

<p>and I do not as yet experience the least fear; but am
concerned most about you, because of the excessive grief which
oppresses you, but I trust to my, and your God, that with the
temptation He will also provide a way of escape, through the
consolation of the Holy Spirit, whereby He will comfort you. I
Cor. 10:13.</p>

<p>O my flesh, my blood, I beseech you by the bleeding wounds
of our dear Lord Jesus Christ, be patient in your tribulation,
that you be not found as one who would fight against God, but
rather say with Mary, "Behold, Lord, be it unto me according to
thy will." Luke 1:38. For at the very hour of meeting, the hour
of separating was known to the Lord, and He in His fatherly
mercy has foreseen and chosen you, also to suffer tribulation
and pain now for His name's sake. And though, my chosen lamb, I
now experience greater joy, because my pilgrimage has come to a
close; yet I beseech you, be of good cheer in the Lord, and
receive it in patience and sorrow. Humble your heart, and
endure it. Sir. 2:2. Oh, I know that your grief is very great.
Oh, if it were God's will, and I might die for you, yea though
I were to taste a twofold death for you, I should not shrink
from it, since it does not come hard to me. Oh, then I should
certainly have the assurance that you should not be deceived by
strange lovers (Jer. 2</p>

<p>25), nor by the noonday devil, nor by your own flesh;
however, I trust nevertheless from the bottom of my heart, that
you will follow the footsteps of my faith, that is, to adhere
to the truth unto the end. Oh, the reason of my writing and my
last and great request is, that you adhere to what God, out' of
great grace has given you. Oh, do not yield nor waver on
account of your great grief, or because of any conflict that
may arise, not known to you as yet; but in all your concerns
pray with confidence to God the merciful dear Father; He will
not forsake you, I am sure of it. Eph. 6:18. And though, my
dear chosen lamb, we shall now be separated for a little while,
we shall meet each other again hereafter in the resurrection of
the dead, and shall forever be with the Lord. I Thess. 4:17.
Oh, then qur small sorrow shall be changed into eternal,
unspeakable joy, and all tears shall be wiped away from our
eyes, and we shall hear the words, "Come, ye blessed of my
Father, inherit the kingdom prepared from the foundation of the
world." Isa. 25:8; Rev. 7:17; Matt. 25:34. O my dear lamb,
comfort yourself with these promises, and with the words of the
Gospel, where Christ Himself says, "Blessed are they that weep
now; for they shall be comforted. But woe unto them that laugh
now, for they shall weep. For the time shall come when they
shall cry out: O ye mountains and hills, fall on us, and cover
us from the face of the Lord." Matt. 4:5; Luke 6:25; Hos.
10:7.</p>

<p>Oh, then it will be at an end with all our persecutors,
executioners, and rackers, and with all destroyers; yea, then
shall be fulfilled the word of the prophet Isaiah, where he says, "O ye destroyers, think ye
that ye shall not also be destroyed? and ye despisers, think ye
that ye shall not also be despised? When ye shall have made an
end to destroy an end shall also be made with you." Isa. 33:1.
But unto you, my flesh, my blood, and unto me, and all saints,
shall the Sun of righteousness arise, and happiness and eternal
prosperity shall encompass us. O my dear sheep, [flock], how
gladly would I comfort you and come to your aid in your
tribulation; but it cannot be at this time. But I sincerely
pray you, remember my words which I spoke to you in times past,
and follow them, this I pray you, and let them be a perpetual
foundation stone. Further, I cordially entreat you, and this
for the eternal salvation of your soul, that you live in quiet
and bring up your child (my own offspring), in the fear of the
Lord, as I trust you will. Once more, my dearest, chosen lamb,
I entreat you from the bottom of my heart, and my inmost soul,
remember frequently what I said to you in times past, and also
wrote in some measure, namely, that you adhere all the days of
your life to that which you voluntarily so willingly accepted,
since it is the true ground, foundation, and way to eternal
life. Oh, there shall never be found another, than this way of
the cross, and if it should be withal the will of your
merciful, dear Father, to prove you with His fatherly rod of
the cross, that is, with bonds or imprisonment, I pray you for
the sake of the eternal salvation of your soul that you will
not fear our enemies; for it is impossible to write or express,
how God the merciful, dear Father comforts those who have
entirely committed themselves to the Lord; so that I should not
have thought that I could have such a heart and mind, so that I
almost wondered how they could depart from the word of God; but
they forgat the comfort of the future glory, and became
heedless, and the oil of righteousness and love failed their
earthen vessels. Matt. 13:43; 25:3.</p>

<p>Hence, my faithful, dearest flesh and blood, be warned, that
you may not, through slothfulness and heedlessness, find
yourself deceived with the heedless, foolish virgins. Therefore
be watchful in the spirit, and give diligence still from day to
day, to put off more and more (Eph. 4:22); for, my dear lamb,
it is necessary that you watch, since not all shall enter into
the promised land, who have gone out of this present spiritual
Egypt and Sodom; and this because of the power and aright of
the old serpent, who does not rest nor pause day or night, but
goes around the camp, seeking whom he may find drowsy; whom
resist stoutly in the faith take upon yourself a valiant and
believing heart.</p>

<p>Furthermore, dearly beloved lamb, it is my request that you
conform to all humility, and be little in your own eyes, and
mind not high things, but condescend to men of low estate. Rom.
12:16. Always be ready and anxious to hear the Word of God, and
remember the words of Christ, "Where two or three are gathered
together in my name, there am I in the midst of them." Matt.
18:20. 0</p>

</div><div id="678"> 

<p>my dear lamb, have fervent love for the church of God, and
forget not to communicate of that which the merciful, dear
Father has given you. Remember that mercy glorifieth against
judgment, for with such sacrifices God is well pleased. Jas.
2:13; Hebrews 13:16.. But I know, my beloved lamb, and have
confidence in you, that you will herein follow the teaching of
our dear Lord Jesus Christ. Matt. 6:1. Herewith, my dearest, I
take farewell and leave from you, my flesh and blood, on this
earth, and commend you into the hands of Almighty God, our
Saviour, Jesus Christ, who is able to preserve and build up you
and your child (Acts 20:32), and to strengthen you in every
distress, even as He is faithful, and will do it, if you, my
dear lamb, only continue in His statutes and laws, and do not
become weary in the way of the cross, though it be full of
anxiety and hardship for you. Oh, that you, my dear lamb, could
take courage and praise and thank your God, that you are found
worthy also to suffer for His name. Oh, think of the words of
the wise man where he says, "Having been a little chastised, we
shall be greatly rewarded; for God trieth his chosen as gold in
the furnace." Wisd. 3:5, 6.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dearly beloved lamb, let the trying of your
.faith work patience, and let patience have her perfect work
(Jas. 1:3, 4), and remember the words of the wise man, "A
patient man is better than a strong man; and he that ruleth his
spirit (mark) than he that taketh a city." Prov. 16:32.
Further, the prophet Jeremiah says, "It is good and a great
thing to be patient, and that one that is forsaken wait for
help of the Lord." Lam. 3:36. Hence possess your souls in
patience for a little while yet, this I beseech you from my
inmost heart. Luke 21:19.</p>

<p>O my dearly beloved lamb, once more I entreat you, acquit
yourself valiantly. Oh, if you love me (as you abundantly. do),
follow the footsteps of my faith; for the time is fulfilled,
the days are spent, my years are ended which I lived in this
wilderness amidst many dangers. I have not run or fought as
uncertainly; hence I rejoice in the spirit, that God the
merciful dear Father has been with me, so that I have fought
the fight, and finished my course. Henceforth there is laid up
for me the crown of eternal life which God, the merciful, dear
Father, shall give me, and not to me only, but unto all them
also that love his appearing.. I Con 9:26; II Tim. 4:7, 8. And
I shall now enter into the precious land, which I have tasted
and seen by faith, wherefore my inner man, has a desire for it,
so that I am not afraid of my enemies, nor shrink back from
Jordan, which though it is most terrible to behold in the eyes
, of some, we are certain and assured that our faithful God of
Israel will be with us, and will make it ready with His strong
arm, so that we shall pass through unharmed, and thus encourage
the young valiant Israelites. In short, to all who want to fear
God from the heart we are, through the grace of God, a savor unto eternal life; and those who hate us, a savor of
death. II Cor. 2:16. Adieu, my flesh, my blood; under the altar
I hope to wait for you all. Rev. 6:9. Let my blood be a
perpetual testament and memorial unto you. Farewell, until we
meet in eternity. Amen.</p>

<p>Oh, keep valiantly, I pray you in the way of righteousness;
for I testify unto you with my blood, before God and His
angels, that it is the true road and highway, yea, the true
grace of our God, on and in which you stand. I Pet. 5:12. The
grace of God be with you. Amen. The 24th of October, five
o'clock A. M., A. D. 1564.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER LETTER FROM MR. JELIS MATTHIJSS TO HIS WIFE</h2> 

<p>My clearly beloved chosen wife and sister in the Lord, I
wish you folks much strength and comfort from God the merciful
dear Father, through the consolation of the Holy Ghost, whereby
He comforts all afflicted, sorrowing hearts that are oppressed
for His testimony, even as is the case with you at this present
time, so that it troubles you greatly though you have been so
much taught by the Holy Ghost, that you well know that it is
the will of our Lord and Master to whom we have bowed our
knees, to serve and be faithful to Him in every distress,
tribulation and temptation; for He has chosen and called us
both to the end that we should keep His name amidst much
tribulation and pain, and should not become weary of these few
stripes and fatherly chastenings (Job 5:17); for thereby He
makes us true heirs of His heavenly kingdom, if we receive them
in resignation and patience, and are exercised thereby; to
which may the merciful, dear Father strengthen us with the
power of His Holy Spirit. Amen.</p>

<p>Further, my dearly beloved wife, since I presume that your
heart is much troubled and sorrowful on my account, and you, as
I believe, would like to hear and know how it is with me, I
cannot forbear to write you a little about how it went with us.
I did write to you on our last night (as I thought), and asked
the bailiff whether I might write a little yet to my poor,
sorrowing wife. He said,"Yes." But we were not allowed to go
upstairs again, and had to remain in the kitchen; and Huyge
would not consent to my writing, except he might hold it, and
hand it to the bailiff, as I think he has done; yet I hope that
you will yet get it. Further, my dear lamb, know, first of all
that my purpose is still unchanged, and I am ready to await in
patience all that God the merciful, dear Father and the enemies
of the truth. will impose upon me. Further know, you folks,
that we had not heard of any trouble of the flesh; but in the
evening, about nine o'clock, Huyge came up stairs with his
wife, saying, "Mr. Jelis and Willeboort, come down; there is
somebody that wants to speak with you." Then our women,
especially Maeyken, began to cry and weep greatly. I asked him
whether we were not to come</p>

</div><div id="679"> 

<p>up again, to which he gave me but little reply. Hence I
immediately divested myself of my cassock, and put on my old
jacket. I then kissed my blood, namely, the child, took off my
hat, and briefly addressed myself to God, the merciful, dear
Father, that He would preserve the child all the days of its
life; my heart experienced some sadness over it, but it did not
last long. When I came down, the stadtholder was standing
there, and a short time afterwards also the bailiff came, and
catching sight of me said, "Well, Mr. Jelis, the time has come,"
or some such words. I then stepped up to him a little closer,
my heart being quite joyful, and said to him in a very friendly
manner, "My lord, I have known you for eight or ten years, and
looked upon you as an honest man; how comes it that you want to
take us in this manner by surprise? We certainly have not heard
a word of it.</p>

<p>He replied, "There is time enough; it will not be yet; but
make yourself ready for tomorrow at five o'clock." I then
exchanged a few more words with him, saying, "O man, man, what a
great burden you put upon yourself; I would from my heart, that
you were not a judge over us, not however for our flesh's sake,
for we are of very good cheer as regards that;" and I took up a
tankard that stood there, and drank his health. When he had
gone away, I began to write, and wrote until about five
o'clock, when he returned and gave orders that the servants
should take us up; and as to how it went up in the city hall,
you probably have heard. When we came away from there, we were
both locked up in a room, and as I was fettered, I could not
write to you.</p>

<p>I inform you further, that the next day, that is, this
morning, the bailiff and the stadtholder, summoned us down, and
brought us both into a separate subterranean dungeon, which was
very dark, and they had also darkened the window. They
said, "You will have to remain here until it will be otherwise."
The stadthokler said, "We are all mortal, we do not know
ourselves when we are to die." I said- nothing. When I stood in
the dungeon, the bailiff looked at me, and I cast my eyes up
heavenward, and said, "O God, preserve us," or such a word or
two.</p>

<p>It seemed as though the bailiff wanted to say, "Yes, it comes
through you;" however, he did not give utterance to it, and
went away with the other, and our God was not far from us, with
the consolation of His Holy Spirit, and made my heart joyful,
so that I could not refrain from singing a hymn.</p>

<p>In the afternoon we were given a bit of a candle, and I
commenced to write this, which I should have liked to send to
you before night, but I was not able to do so; hence, accept it
in love.</p>

<p>O my affectionately beloved lamb, I think our hour is fast
approaching; for it seems that the ruler of this world will
come this night. Hence I beseech you by the bleeding wounds of
our dear Lord Jesus Christ, and for the sake of the eternal
salvation of your soul, that you will never let it leave your heart, how
I walked before you; and when my blood-which I hope you will
bring up in the fear of God-has attained to years of
understanding, admonish him with it, and do you, my most
beloved, not forget it either; but let my blood be a perpetual
testament and memorial to you, how I, according to my feeble
ability, have been an example to you. Still, I would that I had
been able to walk more holily and blamelessly before you; but
you know that according to my feeble ability I sought .to
please the Lord, and, according to my weakness, walked with
boldness in the way of the cross, which it is my heart's
desire, that also you will do; and do not forsake it; but it is
my fatherly entreaty, that you give more diligence to make your
holy calling and election surer and surer; for the day of the
Lord is not far off, in which He will reward every one
according to his works. Then, my faithful lamb, He will find
the lukewarm, slothful and heedless, who now bear the name of
Christians, and do indeed bear the vessels, but have not the
oil of love and righteousness in them. Hence, my flesh, my
blood, I entreat you kindly, not to regard the lukewarm,
slothful, heedless, and fearful; but prove yourself, and daily
examine yourself, whether you are truly walking.in the, faith
of the Son of God. If .you thus examine yourself, you may prove
and know what is yet necessary for you to put off. II Cor.
13:5.</p>

<p>Oh, always .strive for humility, since a humble heart is in
the best condition for self-examination; for such an one
constantly bewails his weakness and insignificance before the
Lord, fearing lest at last he might yet come to shame in this
perilous, fearful time, through the manifold and subtle snares
and nets; wherefore such a regenerate child of God has a
heartfelt desire to be at home, and to'be delivered from this
miserable, spotted garment of the flesh, knowing full well that
he is walking amidst great perils; hence he rejoices when he
hears of the cross of Christ.; he is not minded, lightly to
flee before the ungodly, except when necessity demands it. But
the lukewarm, slothful and heedless, who sometimes think that
they are rich enough, and have need of nothing, they in the
meanwhile, as soon as they hear aught that the ungodly only
form a compact to extirpate the righteous, are greatly
disconcerted or are more fainthearted; and this sometimes is
not yet all, but they come to their neighbor, whose heart they
ought to encourage, and make him fainthearted too.</p>

<p>But you, my faithful lamb, be courageous, this I heartily
entreat you, and look not to the aforementioned, nor to those
who now so unfaithfully depart from the Lord, whether through
cross, or persecution, or false doctrine. Oh, if they
previously had daily examined themselves, and had had a taste
for heavenly things, they would not have suffered themselves to
be deceived so easily, or have dreaded the cross so much; but
they would heartily desire to confess the name of their God
among this wicked</p>

</div><div id="680"> 

<p>and perverse generation, and entreat their Lord from their
hearts, that they might be strangers in the land, to the praise
of their God, and the edification of their neighbor.</p>

<p>Further, my dear, faithful, beloved, and chosen wife, whose
soul I love as dearly as my own, it is yet my Christian and
fatherly .request, that you will take care all the days of your
life, that you may come to the place where I shall soon be, so
that we may not be separated in the eternal habitations. O that
it might be God's holy will and pleasure, and be possible, that
I might drink the cup of bitterness for you. Yea, though it
were thrice, I think I would most willingly do it, from the
heart, so that you might also be saved.</p>

<p>Oh, then I should accept my departure with a still much more
joyful heart, and should certainly have no apprehension that
you should ever be moved from the simplicity of our dear Lord
Jesus Christ; however, I feel no apprehension, as long as you
continue as I now leave you; for you fear the judgment of the
ungodly. Hence I desire with Sirach, that you remember in all
your undertakings what he says, namely, "My son, whatsoever thou
takest in hand, remember the end, and thou shalt never sin"
(Sir. 7:36), namely, such sins as could keep you out of God's
kingdom; for as regards your daily frailties and mis-steps
before God, they will not condemn you or bar you out, for with
reference to this the holy apostle John says, "If any man sin,
we have an advocate with God the Father, who maketh
intercession for us," which is Christ Jesus, the high priest,
who entered in, namely, into the holy of holies, and made an
eternal offering and atonement for His people and generation,
and sat down on the right hand of God His Father, as an
advocate and intercessor for our daily stumblings and fallings,
as the apostles say, I John 2:1; Rom. 8:34; Hebrews 9:12; Ps.
110:1; Col. 3:1. See, my faithful and dearly beloved lamb, to
this intercessor and advocate I direct you, and not to the
deceased saints, as the blind leaders of this world do.</p>

<p>Therefore, flee to Him, for refuge in your great distress;
remember that His car is not heavy that He cannot hear you, and
His hand not shortened that He cannot help you; for His eyes
are upon His saints (Ps. 34:15 ), whom He has so dearly
purchased with His own precious blood; and He listens to their
calling, sighing and crying: for He calls those blessed
already, who here weep and suffer for righteousness' sake, of
whom you are one now. Matt. 5:4. Hence, O my flesh, my blood,
comfort yourself with these promises, this I pray you; for
those who sow here in tears,shall hereafter reap in great joy.
Ps. 126:5. Oh, therefore do not think, my dear lamb, that the
tears you now weep will have been wept in vain; for they have
already come before the face of the Lord. Hence, be patient yet
for a short time, this I entreat you; for He will not have you
here long, I hope, but will also take you away from the evil to
come, and bring you to sure rest in His chamber, as the prophet Isaiah
(57:1, 2) says, Because you, according to your feeble ability,
desire to walk uprightly unto the end, to which may the
merciful, dear Father help you, through the help and power of
His Holy Spirit; faithful is He who will doubtless do it. I
Thes. 5:24. Further, my dear, chosen and beloved wife and
sister in the Lord, as I cannot yet draw my fatherly and
solicitous heart away from you, but would so gladly from my
inmost soul, present you, in and according to your weakness,
perfect and blameless before God, it is my humble and kindly
request, that you will sincerely love your neighbor, and always
remember the poor saints of the household of God, even as you
have hitherto had such a disposition. Let your love herein not
grow less, but much rather increase. Always remember Christ's
words, where He says, "The poor ye will always have with you."
Matt. 26:11. And it is manifest that there are always poor
among or in the house of God. Heb. 3:6. Bear in mind that it is
a great and acceptable work before the Lord; wherefore Sirach
says that the alms of a man is as a purse on the way with him;
and it will spare him in the judgment. Yea, it blotteth out
sin, and covereth the multitude thereof; for mercy glorieth
against judgment, says James (2:13). Hence, give diligence also
in this, as I am confident you will; and though there is no
necessity for writing you this, yet I hope it will tend to your
best interests, so that after my departure you will not grow
slack. I furthermore, entreat you yet, my dearly beloved lamb,
that you will always associate with the pious, that you may
attain to greater piety and discretion. And desire the
reasonable, sincere milk, namely, to hear the Word of God, that
you may thereby grow and increase in every good work. I Peter
2:2. And live in quietness (you know what I mean); this I
earnestly entreat you; and wait for the day of your redemption,
which, perhaps, is not far off. Herewith I will take my leave
and eternal adieu from you, my flesh, my blood, and humbly
entreat you once more, for the sake of the eternal salvation of
your soul, and by all the great love that you have ever had to
me, that after my departure you will be mindful of my writing,
and heartfelt entreating and admonishing; whether done by
writing or orally; and do not let it remain with you as a dead
letter or a fable, but make frequent use of it as a
prescription tending to your health, and keep it in the strong
box of your heart as a perpetual treasure and memorial; for it
will bring you more profit than many pieces of fine gold and
silver. Oh, the time is approaching rapidly, and I will
therefore cease writing and everything else; hence it is my
affectionate request, if you love me and the eternal salvation
of your soul, fulfill my request, according to your feeble
ability, and depart neither to the right nor to the left,
whether through the cross of bonds or imprisonment, or any
other cause; and if God, the merciful, dear Father makes you
worthy to suffer for His name, be not</p>

</div><div id="681"> 

<p>afraid; for I should never have thought that bonds and
imprisonment could cause so little conflict to one that has
renounced himself, and has a heartfelt desire to be at home;
hence, fear them not. Now, my affectionately beloved, chosen
lamb, and dear sister in the Lord, my time is fulfilled, the
days are spent, the years are finished; I have fought a good
fight, I have finished my course, I have kept the faith (II
Tim. 4:7); so that my enemies who set themselves against me
have been put to shame (Psalm 53:5); for through my God I have
gained the victory, who has delivered me out of the jaws of the
lions and the mouth of hell, and shall also deliver me from
every evil (II Tim. 4:17, 18), and save me at His coming, and
give me the true promised land, which I have seen by faith, and
tasted of its fruits, wherefore I have a heartfelt longing for
it. Oh, assist me to thank and praise the merciful, dear
Father, that I have safely come through the wilderness of this
evil, wicked and perverse world, and am now standing before
Jordan, through which only I have yet to pass. Though it is
somewhat terrible to behold, yet I do not fear it at all, for I
am sure that my God will succor me, and make me ready, so that
I shall pass through it safely and unharmed; for faithful is He
that promised it to me, and He will never leave me, nor forsake
me, so that I may boldly say, "The Lord is with me; I fear not
what man may do unto me." Ps. 56:4; Heb. 13:5, 6. They have
come for me.</p><br />

<h1>JAN GERRITS, BURNT AT THE HAGUE, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, THE 15TH DAY OF DECEMBER, A. D. 1564</h1>

<h2>A testament by Jan Gerrits, made while imprisoned
at the Hague for the testimony of Jesus <i>Christ, in December, A. D.</i> 1564</h2> 

<p>Grace and peace from God the heavenly Father, and His Son
Jesus Christ, be with you. Amen.</p>

<p>My dearest and much beloved brethren and sisters in the
Lord, I inform you that I have received your communication,
which I have read with great joy; for its object is, in the
first place, to incite to steadfastness in the faith, and to a
perfect end, and this through Jesus Christ, wherefore I entreat
the heavenly Father with all my heart and mind, that not only
I, but all the God-fearing may attain to an upright end,
according to the will of God, as I hope. For I have suffered
stripes and great pain, and this, according to the words of
John, for the brethren. I John 3:16. I desire to suffer not
only this, but also, if it is the will of God, to die for His
name, Word and truth, no matter what kind of a death it may be;
for I should not have thought that it should last so long; but
as not a hair of my head can be hurt, without the Lord's
permission, I want to await the end with Him, in patience, as
behooves a Christian.</p>

<p>Therefore, my much beloved brethren and sisters, it is my
heartfelt request that you and all the God-fearing will entreat
the Lord for me your weak brother, that I may receive the end of my faith; for
the prayer of the righteous avails much, and is effectual. I
Peter 1:9. They use every artifice to rob me of the beautiful
treasure which I have received from God; but I trust to the
Lord, that He will preserve me.</p>

<p>In the second place, dear brethren, it is a great joy for me
and the Lord, to learn that the vineyard of the Lord is
enlarging, and that its branches are spreading wide, bringing
forth upright fruits of the most high God, which I have so long
desired. Hence I thank my and your God, that I hear what you
have written, and rejoice that the light is rising in every
nook and corner, and shines over every mountain, as I hear from
many friends, who come to comfort me in my bonds. Therefore, my
dear friends, be diligent, everyone according to the gift he
has received from God, and put it diligently out upon usury, so
that you may get much gain, and may hear these words of the
Lord, "Well done thou good and faithful servant: thou hast been
faithful over a few things, I will make thee ruler over many
things: enter in to the marriage of the Lord." Matthew
25:21.</p>

<p>Thus, let everyone build up the house with lively stones,
that it may become a glorious priesthood, and that they may
offer up spiritual sacrifices, acceptable to God by Jesus
Christ. I Peter 2:5. We may always be of good cheer in the
Lord, for His power is so great with those who fear Him, that
all death, devil, hell, fire and sword, must yield to Him. All
this cannot hinder those who are built upon Christ; for we can
do all things through Him who makes us worthy, and through His
love everything is overcome, and it casts out fear (I John 4:
18), as I can indeed say; for when I was brought into the
king's hall, and stood there almost an hour, before the lords
came, and saw how everything was being put in readiness to
torture me, I again and again thought in my mind, "O Lord,
unless Thou now succor me, I am utterly lost;" and I prayed Him
to give me a mouth to speak to His praise and glory, and to
close it against everything tending to blaspheme His holy name
and that of my neighbor.</p>

<p>While I thus spoke and they were getting ready to torture
me, I felt neither fear nor apprehension; however, they handled
me in a very severe and fierce manner, so that the president
said, "Why will you not tell the truth?" Ans."Because Christ
spoke nothing but what tended to the glory of His Father, and
what concerned His own divinity</p>

<p>about all other things He was silent. And I want to do the
same; wherever His honor and the doctrine of His commandments
are concerned, I do not want to be silent either before
emperor, or king, or duke, or count." Instantly the order
was, "Handle him without gloves: a drowned calf is a small risk."
Behold, my dear brethren and sisters, how unmercifully they
treated me. Nevertheless, the Lord was with me, blessed be His
holy name; I had no control of myself, but the Lord directed
my</p>

</div><div id="682"> 

<p>mouth, so that they could obtain nothing according to their
will. See, my dear friends, how faithful the Lord is; him that
trusts in Him He does not suffer to be confounded. Sir.
2:10.</p>

<p>Hence I write again, always be of good cheer in the Lord,
and admonish one another at all times, for Peter deems it
expedient and profitable to help bear one another's burdens,
and this in love; for whether one member suffer; all the
members suffer with Him; or whether one member be honored, all
the members rejoice with Him. II Peter 1:13; I Corinthians
12:26.</p>

<p>In the third place, I let you know that my wife has been
here, and brought me your kind greeting, which I was very glad
to hear; as also that she desires to follow that which is best,
according to her feeble ability. For she confesses that the
life which she has hitherto led is evil, as we may indeed all
confess that ours also was unprofitable in times past. Tit.
3:3. Hence I entreat you, my dear brethren, that you would
exercise a watchful care over her, and admonish her to a better
life, and this in love; and if you should be able to accomplish
anything, and write it to me, it would greatly rejoice me. If
you write to me before I offer up my sacrifice to God, send
your communication to my aged mother, or to N., and I shall get
it. Moreover, I gave her some spices, namely, a nutmeg, three
or four hands full of ginger, and some cloves, that she should
give them to J'. C., or to some one else, that they should be
cut up in pieces and properly distributed around, as a
perpetual greeting, and this in the Lord. Here upon earth, an
eternal adieu in Christ, peace and farewell, in case this be
the last opportunity, before we all meet in the presence of
Christ, and there see one another in His glory. Amen.</p>

<p>My much beloved brethren, I have lived with you, and rejoice
that you are so courageous in building the city and the temple
of Jerusalem, which have lain waste and in ruins so many years.
Hence do not lose courage, brethren, though you be mocked and
reviled as was Israel. When they rebuilt the wall (mark), they
waxed stronger as they worked. Though the enemies raged, that
the work might nrot progress, yet they did not cease from it,
but kept watch the more diligently, holding in one hand the
spear or the sword, and in the other the trowel, and were of
good cheer, for God was with them and fought for them. Neh. 4.
Behold, my dear friends, let us take an example, how valiant
these heroes were; they were not daunted by their enemies. Thus
let us also do, however much they cry or write, yea, revile and
say, "Behold, these people come, and want to lay a new
foundation to the city, and do not know an a from a b. Whence
have they this? Where did they learn it? We have studied at
universities, and spent our money for this purpose. Now, should
these asses come and teach us? One is nothing but a cobbler;
another, a weaver or furrier, and these want to quote
Scripture. Let them remain at their trades; that [quoting Scripture] is our province; nor will we
tolerate it; it must be opposed with fire, water, and the
sword." Nevertheless, do not let us fear or be intimidated,
however much the dogs bark, and the lions roar; for God, who is
with us, is a strong God; He will preserve His own, and help
them gain the victory. They can do no more than what the Lord
permits them. My dear brethren, excuse this my simple letter;
it was for the most part written in haste, the day after I
received your letter. Herewith I will commend you once more to
the Lord, and to the Word of His grace. Tell the friends in
Vlieland, that I affectionately greet them with the peace of
the Lord, that they shall contend valiantly for the law of the
Lord. Pray the Lord for me; I will also pray for you; do not
forget me in your prayers; think as though you were imprisoned,
too. Heb. 13:3. Farewell. The fear of the Lord preserve you
all. Amen.</p>

<p>I also send you here another letter; perhaps it may refresh
you in the assault you suffer from the adversaries of baptism.
[What prompted me to write it is a controversy] which I had
with a Lutheran preacher. The following is a reply to his
letter, which he sent me, since we had often conversed
together. The Lord be with your spirit. Amen.</p>

<h2>A LETTER FROM JAN GERRITS TO THE LUTHERAN PREACHER</h2> 

<p>My much beloved good friend, herewith I will bid you adieu,
for after this I hope to dispute with, or write against,
neither you nor any other man; for Paul says, "Avoid
contentions, or profane babblings, and unprofitable
disputations; for they will increase unto more ungodliness, and
their word will eat as doth a canker." Tit. 3:9; II Tim. 2:16,
17. Hence I want to be delivered also. of you, and that my soul
may rest in peace with Gad. Farewell always.</p>

<p>See, my good friend, here are the arms and weapons of my
faith, and this, in part, briefly shown. Behold, with these,
and no other, whether of iron or steel, spear or sword, will I
attack the kingdom of antichrist; for spirit must be overcome
with spirit, and flesh with carnal weapons. Hence I say with
the apostle, "The weapons of our warfare are not carnal, but
mighty before God to the pulling down of everything that
exalteth itself against the truth; for we wrestle not only
against flesh and blood, but against principalities, against
powers, against the rulers of this world, against spirits of
wickedness under heaven." II Cor. 10:4, 5; Eph. 6:12. Hence all
Christians must put on the armor of God, that they may be able
to stand against the wiles of the devil; and also be ready in
every respect. Hence Peter says, "Be sober, be vigilant; because your adversary the devil, as
a roaring lion, walketh about, seeking whom he may devour, whom
resist steadfast in</p>

</div><div id="683"> 

<p>the faith." I Pet. 5:8, 9. This is our weapon, with which we
are satisfied.</p>

<p>In the first place, a Christian does not know war, but must
patiently bear all that comes upon him, for the Lord's sake;
for Christ taught His disciples only love for their enemies.
Moreover, He forbade them, when they asked Him, "Lord, wilt thou
that we command fire to come down from heaven, and consume this
people?""No;" He said,"ye know not what manner of spirit ye are
of." Matt. 9: 54, 55. Be merciful, as your heavenly Father is
merciful. When He suffered He threatened not. I Pet. 2:23.
These examples we follow with ail diligence, according to our
feeble ability, commending our souls to the mercy of God, as
the faithful Creator. From this you may see or understand, what
kind of people we are, and what spirit we have.</p>

<p>See, my good friend, with these weapons and arms I will meet
you, as a little and unrenowned David, meeting the great
Goliath and presumptuous champion who mocked and reviled the
army of God, and relied upon his own strength, even as you now
trust in your learning, and are proud of the name"Rabbi," and
because of the great reputation and renown of your
understanding, might and power, you begin to say with
Goliath, "Am I a dog, that thou comest to me with staves? I can
and will give thy flesh unto the fowls of the air to eat." I
Samuel 17:43. Thus spoke Goliath, and you no less; for you say
that without strength I am deceived and dead. Yes, my friend, I
am well aware, that I and those like me are always looked upon
by you as little and unlearned.</p>

<p>Behold, by your presumptuousness you have brought it so far,
that I dare boldly step forth with my sling and stone, and say
to you, as to Goliath, the champion and defender of the
Philistines, "Behold, thou hast come out to me, relying on thy spear and
shield; but I come to thee from confidence in God, in the name
of the God of Israel, and will give thy flesh this day unto the
fowls- of the air to eat, and slay thee with thine own sword,"
namely with your own writing or disputation, which serves me to
overcome you, not by the spirit of the universities, but by the
Word and power of God, and this in Dutch, my mother tongue, to
the greater glory of God, and to your shame. And the dumb ass
shall cause your madness to be manifest; you Balaam have beaten
me, poor ass, so long until I spake by the power of God, Num.
22:28. You Goliath have so long reviled and defied me and the
army of Israel, that I slay you with your own sword, which I
should not have done, had you not snapped with such sharp
teeth, and flourished your pen so boldly; how could I let this
pass. Now, if I receive no thanks for it, as I presume will be
the case, you may blame yourself for it, for one cannot be
silent and speak the words of God, "O men, men, it were well for you, that like Gamaliel you
would leave the people of God in peace; for if this work is of
men, it will come to naught, but if it is of God, you cannot overthrow it: hence, take
good heed, lest you run against the sword of the Lord, and be
found even to fight against God. Persecute Jesus of Nazareth no
longer, and leave Israel unmolested." Acts 5:34, etc.; 9.</p>

<p>To come now to the purport and beginning of your letter,
which you sent me in order to instruct me in all the arguments
and intelligence pertaining to the faith, I find that you greet
me in the name of the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost. To
this I reply. Since you boast of being a Christian, and regard
me as a reprobate and unbeliever, and as laboring under a false
opinion, therefore I say that you are wrong in writing thus,
for John says,"If .there come any unto you, and bring not this
doctrine, receive him not into your house, neither greet him;
for he that greefeth him is partaker of his evil deeds." II
John 10, 11. And Paul says that if any man that is called a
brother be nevertheless a fornicator or the like, he, as also
an unbeliever, shall not inherit the kingdom of God. Hence,
since they cannot inherit the kingdom of God, we are not to eat
bread with them, for the destruction of their flesh, that they
may consider from whence they are fallen. I Cor. 5.</p>

<p>In the second place, you call me your brother. Why am I your
brother, seeing we differ in faith? Is it because we are all
created of God the Father? I say no to this; for if we were
brethren according to the spirit, and according to the doctrine
of Christ and the apostles, we must be in one faith and
practice, and be led by one spirit, which, however, is far from
being the case; for the brotherhood must spring out of the
heavenly regeneration, through the hearing of the divine Word,
from the earthly into the heavenly. This brotherhood is not
ascribed to unbelievers, nor does it originate in carnal
descent, as Paul clearly indicates, when he says"Be not
unequally yoked together with unbelievers for what fellowship
hath righteousness with unrighteousness? and what communion
hath light with darkness? and what concord hath Christ with
Belial? or what part hath he that believeth with an infidel?
and what agreement hath the temple of God with idols?" etc, II
Cor. 6:14, etc. For the brotherhood consists in
this, "Endeavoring to keep the unity of the Spirit; to abide in
one hope of the calling; one Lord, one faith, one baptism."
Eph. 4:3. Mark, you are satisfied with your baptism, whether
administered by the midwife, or by confirmation, and the like;
not considering that God would dwell above all, and in us all,
through His Word.</p>

<p>Since, then, you are so contrary to me, and I _to you, in
faith, doctrine, life and spirit, why do you call me brother, I
ask you once more? Or, if I am a heretic and a renegade from
the truth, why do you not avoid me, after I have been
admonished once or twice? for this is commanded by the
Scriptures. But alas! you do not obey the divinely inspired
Scriptures, but choose them unto your own destruction. II Pet.
3:16.</p>

</div><div id="684"> 

<p>to the third place, 1 find in your deceptive letter of
instruction, that I am accused and decried only with reference
to error and misapprehension regarding baptism, no other
articles being mentioned. What shall I say to this? Are all
your gods an abomination to you? and is it all over with your
false doctrine and church usages? I think not; you are too fond
of deceitful gain. But I well know your intention; you think
that when you shall have deprived me of one, you will also get
the rest, according to what you yourself said in Delft. Oh,
what a brother you are to me, fine, indeed, in appearance I But
my Teacher and Master Christ Jesus has warned me against you,
to"be wise as serpents, and harmless as doves." Matt. 10:16.
Yes, you are such a brother to me, as the old, lying prophet,
who deceived the man of God by his lies; for God had commanded
the man of God to prophesy against the altar, and to eat no
bread, nor drink water at that place, until he should have
returned into his own country. But the seed of the serpent, the
old prophet, said, "Eat bread with me, and drink water." The man
of God answered, "God has forbidden me this." But the deceiver
said, "I am alsd a prophet of the Lord, as thou art, and the
Lord spake to me, that you should eat bread here, and drink
water." Then the man of God went in with him, and transgressed
the commandment of the Lord; wherefore, in punishment of his
disobedience, he was slain by a lion on the way. I Kings
13.</p>

<p>This example is a great terror to my soul; for after
deception, and transgression of the Word of the Lord, he sends
lions, dragons, and bears, that they may get dominion of my
soul, and kill it; for if my faith were feeble and wavering, I
should be overcome and certainly be killed, but the anchor of
my faith is steadfast.</p>

<p>In the fourth place, I come to your unreasonable or willful
stupidity, that you want to maintain your infant baptism by the
circumcision of the law, or Israel's sign of the covenant. For
Paul says that circumcision (which you understand to be a
figure of baptism), is made without hands, in the spirit, for
the putting off of the sinful flesh; whose praise is not of
men; as was done with the hand on Israel -but of God. Col.
2:11; Rom. 2:29. Now, is your infant baptism in the spirit,
without hands, and this for the putting off of the sinful
flesh, and for sin which they have not yet committed? For to
put off the sinful is this, as Paul says, "Mortify your members
which are upon the earth; fornication, adultery, uncleanness,
lasciviousness, evil concupiscence;" see, whether this can be
understood as having reference to your children.</p>

<p>And through your infant baptism you cause it that we are
called Anabaptists, though we do not baptize, nor are baptized
twice, but once, and this according to the truth, and pursuant
to the command and practice of the apostles; and with this we
are well satisfied.</p>

<p>In the fifth place, I will tell you our confession and
practice, to show you that our baptism originates not in an
opinion, but in the command of the most high God. After this, I
hope to write against or dispute with neither you nor any one
else, as said before; for great, presumptuous wisdom, I have
not, but an assured heart and a firm faith in my ground. Listen
to this brief statement, "Touching circumcision, I confess that it was a token of
Abraham's covenant, to him and to all his seed (Gen. 17:9): and
also the entering into Israel, the church of God." The external
circumcision of Israel was a figure of the future, inward
circumcision of Christ, as may clearly be understood from the
spirit of the New Testament, even as Paul says that that is not
circumcision, which is outward in the flesh; but circumcision
is that of the heart, in the spirit, and not in the letter, or
law; whose praise is not of men, but of God. Rom. 2:28,29. Nor
are you those who are circumcised in Christ, with the
circumcision made without hands, in putting off the sinful
flesh. Col. 2:11. Further, what people are they who are buried
with Him through baptism? Listen, I pray you: Are you risen?
through what? Through faith. What faith? What faith have the
sponsors, through which God works, as you people understand it?
Mark here, no infants; but such as believe and understand. And
this you put forth as your strongest argument. O friend, do not
willfully kick against the goad; or it will be hard for you to
speak against God, and to drive His Word and truth from you so
stoutly. For, if you claim outward circumcision to be a figure
of baptism, well, then, who makes you ped6baptists so
presumptuous that you baptize infants before the eighth day?
And why do you baptize female children? for, under the law,
these were not circumcised; from which it would follow that
female children are not to be baptized; for truth is
consistent.</p>

<p>You are at an end with your figures of baptism; but we have
a better explanation concerning the figures of baptism, and
Paul and Peter shall help us keep it by their spirit and
testimony. Peter says that the entrance through the water into
Noah's ark signifies to us baptism. Gen. 7:7; I Pet. 3:20, 21.
He who dares deny this, may also contradict us, who are little
and unlearned in their estimation, yet are taught of God. Matt.
11:25.</p>

<p>Our second witness with regard to the figures of baptism is
the great apostle Paul, who declared the counsel of God. Acts
20:27. He says that the Exodus of the children of Israel from
Egypt, their passage through the Red Sea, and that they were
baptized under the pillar of cloud, through Moses, was a
figure, and for our instruction. Ex. 14:22; I Cor. 10:1. But
we, who are of the substance in the spirit and the New
Testament, confess a clear ordinance, doctrine and command of
God, and then the rule, practice and the clear examples of the
apostles, regarding baptism; this is explanation enough for
us.</p>

</div><div id="685"> 

<p>The command of Christ is, "Go ye into all the world, and
preach the Gospel to every creature; teach them to observe all
things whatsoever I have commanded you, baptizing them in the
name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost</p>

<p>he that believeth and is baptized shall be saved; but he
that believeth not shall be damned." Mark 16:15, 16; Matt.
28:19, 20. [Baptism is,] in the first place, a grave of sin, an
entering in the church of God, a putting on of Christ, a
fleeing from the wrath of God, a washing of regeneration, and
the seal of a good conscience or assurance toward God; and he
that rejects this rejects the counsel of God. The practice of
the apostles was this, "If thou believest with all thine heart,
thou mayest." Romans 6:4; Gal. 3:27; Tit. 3:5; I Pet. 3:21;
Luke 7:30; Acts 8:37.</p>

<p class="c25">The following was written by Jan Gerrits,
although it is not contained in the first edition.</p>

<p>Thus they were first asked. If you also ask the brethren
this, and they say,"Yes, it is well; for the apostles baptized
upon faith and not otherwise." For if the eunuch had said, "I
cannot believe," Philip would not have baptized him. But he
said, "I believe that Jesus is the Christ, the Son of the living
God." Acts 8:37. This is my faith, too, and nothing else.
Again, when the multitude at Jerusalem heard Peter's
exhortation, they were alarmed, and asked, "What shall we do?"
Hear the good advice, "Repent, and be baptized every one of you
in the name of Jesus, and ye shall receive the gift of the Holy
Ghost." And they that gladly received the word were baptized.
Acts 2: 37. Do your infants also do thus? Then you are the old
foundation; for other foundation can no man lay than that is
laid, which is Jesus Christ, His Word and example. The jailer
rejoiced with all his house that he had become a believer. Acts
16: 34. Are your infants also believers? Then it is well. Peter
preached in the house of Cornelius, the centurion of the
Italian band, and the Holy Ghost fell on the Gentiles as well
as on the Jews. Acts 10:44, 45. Were there also infants
present, on whom the Holy Ghost fell? And this is what I asked
you before we parted, when the servant came to spread the
table, and you said, "That which is born of the flesh is flesh,"
and this with reference to infant baptism. I then asked what
became of the Spirit, but you gave me no reply. For John
says, "The wind bloweth where it listeth, and thou hearest the
sound thereof, but canst not tell whence it cometh." John 3:8.
Do children feel the Holy Spirit? Nicodemus was a carnal man,
and experienced nothing concerning the Spirit of God; hence
Christ referred him to a child as we find stated, Matthew 18:3.
To be born again through the water from carnality into the
Spirit is as Christ Himself says, John 3:5."Verily, verily, I
say unto thee, Except a man be born of water and of the Spirit,
he cannot enter into the kingdom" of God. A <i>man,</i> what
else does this signify, than, he that is carnally minded, as
the afore said Nicodemus; for to be carnally minded is death; it does
not mean children, for they do not feel it. But to be spiritual
is life and peace; as Paul tes tifies. And to the Galatians he
says, "If ye be led of the Spirit, ye are not under the law. Now
the works of the flesh are manifest, which are these, Adultery,
fornication, uncleanness, lasciviousness, idolatry, witchcraft,
hatred, variance, emulations, wrath, strife, seditions,
heresies, envyings, murders, drunkenness, revellings, and such
like. But the fruit of the Spirit is love, joy, peace,
long-suffering, gentleness, goodness, faith, meekness,
temperance: against such there is no law." Gal. 5:18. As also
Peter says, "Wherefore laying aside all malice, and all guile,
and hypocrisies, and envies, and all evil speakings, as
new-born babes, desire the sincere milk of the word, that ye
may grow thereby." I Peter 2:1, 2. Thus do also; lay aside the
great conceitedness and presumptuousness of your heart, and
build yourself up, a lively stone in the house of God, a holy
priesthood, to offer up spiritual sacrifices, acceptable to God
by Jesus Christ. These sacrifices are the works of
righteousness, and not human inventions, reason, or ordinances
of outward sacrifices. Behold, with this consciousness we go
on, or, this assurance is sufficient and valuable enough to us,
to forsake property and life for Christ's sake, which is far
from being the case with you people. In short, we do not seal
the epistle of Christ before it is written; we do not sow
before the field is well plowed with the Spirit and Word of
God; we do not sail, before we have favorable weather and wind;
but you would have the child of the mother before it has been
borne its proper time. But we can well wait till it has been
borne its proper time and is brought forth by the mother. Who
can forbear to speak of what everybody sees? And thus we
recognize baptism in the Scriptures as a command of the Lord,
and a certain clear practice of the apostles. Moreover, we also
clearly see, what cause baptism has, why it is administered,
what benefits it brings, to what people it is adapted, and what
other name it has in the Scriptures. It is, in the first place,
a grave of sin, an entering into the church of God, a putting
on of Christ, a fleeing from the wrath of God, a washing of
regeneration, and the seal of a good conscience toward God. And
he that forsakes or rejects this forsakes and rejects the
counsel and Word of God.</p>

<p>In the sixth place, as regards this, that I spoke tartly and
insolently to you, I answer. Behold, my Lord and Master taught
me nothing else, when He says, "Beware of false prophets, which
come to you in sheep's clothing, but inwardly they are ravening
wolves." Matt., 7:15. Seeing you came to me with so fair an
apearance, to slay my soul, as you indeed boasted, why then
should I not speak or write the truth? For what do you but seek
to devour or tear me, to entice a poor sheep away from Christ's
pasture. No, no! God the chief Shepherd preserve me from this.
No one shall</p>

</div><div id="686"> 

<p>pluck them out of His hand, but if one goes out himself,
then the case is different. Yet, you have been assiduous, and
struck your sharp fangs into my soul; and yet you call me
brother. Hence I call you a wolf in sheep's clothing; however,
be converted and become a lamb. O friend, what have you come
to?</p>

<p>In the seventh place, you strewed sweet roses and down
before my feet, and made the bank slippery that I might glide
off, saying, "Mind not what those who deceived you without the
Scriptures will say. Yet see, is this without the Scriptures?"
Just as if I had relied upon the fair words of men. No, no; had
it depended on fair speeches, you would have laid enough snares
for me; your works constantly testify to this. See, my good
friend, I think that this is enough for you, namely, my own
faith and confession; and I pray you, not so to damn and
condemn little infants, and this for Adam's transgression, lest
you be condemned and damned; since Christ, by His death, has
redeemed us therefrom, as was stated when I was with you; for
Paul says, "As by the offense of one judgment came upon all men
to condemnation; even so by the righteousness of one the free
gift came upon all men unto justification of life." Rom. 5:18.
John says;"Behold the Lamb of God, which taketh away the sin of
the world." John 1:29, [Paul says] to the Galatians, "Christ
hath redeemed us from the curse of the law." Galatians 3:13.
And to the Ephesians, "That he abolished in his flesh the
enmity, on the cross." Moreover, He has promised them His
kingdom, when He says, "Suffer little children to come unto me .
. . for of such is the kingdom of God. And He received them,
blessed them, laid His hands on them, and said: Except ye
receive the kingdom of God as a little child, you shall not
enter therein." Mark 10:14 to 16; Luke 18:16, 17; Matt. 19:14,
15. Now when He says, <i>of such,</i> there is no difference,
even as Paul says; that both Jews and Gentiles are all under
sin. But you separate them, and say that it is only spoken to
Jewish children, as though they were Jewish children, I replied
that you should prove this to me.by the Gospel; but you could
not do it, and gave me no answer. For Christ showed His divine
miracles an the children of the. Gentiles as well as on those
of the Jews, as, for instance, on the Gentile woman and the
centurion's servant; and He gives this testimony concerning the
centurion, that he has not found so great faith in Israel. And
enough other such examples.</p>

<p>Finally, I beg you to make the best allowance for my simple
writing, for it is rustic work. If I had received better
talents from God, I should indeed desire to do better; but now
I thank Him for what He does give me. Farewell.</p>

<p>Below there was written: I, Jan Gerritts Ketelaer van
Tessel, confess but one Lord, one faith, one baptism, one
Spirit, and one Father of all, who is above all, and through
all, and in us all. I come quickly: hold fast that which thou
hast, that no man take thy crown. Yea, the Lord Jesus comes. Ephesians
4:4, 5; Rev. 3:11.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER LETTER FROM JAN GERRITS, TO HIS ACQUAINTANCES</h2> 

<p>After all affectionate greeting, dear brethren and sisters
in the Lord, here is what you requested of me. I have complied
with your wish, according to my feeble ability, as much as in
me is; for which I most heartily thank God the Father and His
beloved Son Jesus Christ, that He does not forsake His own, but
always helps them to gain the victory; for His gracious eyes
are ever upon His own, and His ears are constantly open to
their prayers. Ps. 34:15. For it is written, "When thou passest
through water and fire, I will be with thee." Isa. 43:2. Hence
I give Him alone praise and honor for His great succor and
working, which He has shown in me poor sinner, in my
tribulation, suffering and pain, yea, thus, my dear brethren,
that the dogs, lions, and bears have not been able to harm me,
however much they bark, roar, and growl; for the Lord was my
protector; even as I put my hope of faith in Him, that through
His great grace He will also preserve me unto the end; for if
God is with us, who can harm us, and if the Lord keeps the
house (as David says), who can injure it. My friends, I wish I
could describe to you the state of my heart and mind when I was
suspended, and severely beaten for the testimony of our Lord
Jesus Christ; for His Word, and His bitter suffering which He
endured for us poor sinners, was thus present with me that I
thought of nothing else. Behold, my brethren and sisters, how
the Lord can keep and protect His own that trust in Him, even
as the apple of His eye. I would further inform you, my dear
brethren and sisters, that they first plied me with questions,
namely, what my name was, where I was born, how old I was, and
how long I had lived in Tessel. In the second place, when I
received baptism. <i>Ans.</i> "Five years ago."
<i>Ques.</i> "Where did it take place?" <i>Ans.</i> "I do not
wish to tell you." Then they rejoined, "You will be made to
tell," and pointed to the executioner, saying, further, "If you
are asked concerning the truth, you certainly ought to tell
it." <i>Ans.</i> "All that concerns the faith, I am willing to
tell you; but God has not commanded me to tell this." In the
third place they asked me whether my wife was also of this
persuasion? Axs."No, I regret to say." In the fourth place, "Who
had administered it?" <i>Ans."I</i> do not wish to tell you."
<i>Ques.</i> "Was it N?" <i>Ans.</i> "God has not commanded me to
tell it; and even if I should tell you, he does not reside in
the king's dominions." <i>Ques.</i> "Christ, when He was placed
before the authorities, answered when He was interrogated; why
then will you not do the'same?" <i>Ans.</i> "When He was asked
questions that concerned the honor of His Father, and His own
divinity, He answered; otherwise, He was silent. Anything that
you may</p>

</div><div id="687"> 

<p>ask me concerning His law, Word, commandments or
prohibitions, I am willing to confess before emperors, kings,
dukes, counts, princes, and other lords, and not to keep silent
concerning it." He forthwith briefly said to the
executioner, "Seize him." In short, when they laid hold on me, I
fell down .prostrate and besought the Lord for His assistance.
He immediately said to the rackers, "Lift him up." Thus, they fell upon me, and dealt with me as
the Lord our Master was dealt with, when He was divested of His
garments. They tied my hands behind my back unmercifully,
blindfolded me, drew me up, and then beat me, belaboring me as
though I had been a tree, so that the rods cracked like hemp
stalks. They said, "Speak; if you have a dumb devil in you, we
will soon drive him out." But the Lord, blessed be His holy
name, closed my mouth, so that not a single exclamation of
pain, nor any other sound, escaped my lips; for the suffering
of our Lord, as already said, and His testimony, so filled my
heart, that it is impossible to express it. In short, when they
saw that faintness seized all my members, they said, "Let him
down; perhaps the dumb devil will speak sooner then, " When they
let me down, I fell with my head against the boards; they
therefore took me and set me upon a bench, where I would have
fainted again, had they not held me. They stood there like
lions and bears, demanding that I should answer their
questions; but the Lord was my help and strength, praise and
glory be to Him for His grace, so that nothing escaped my
lips.</p>

<p>Then the president said, "Have you no stout rods to drive out
this dumb devil?" He replied, "No; but I have rope." They would
have blindfolded me again, but he said, "Let him see it." When
he struck, I thought, "O Lord, thou seest it," and closed my
eyes. Yea, my friends, if they had continued to beat as long as
there was breath, I think they would have got nothing out of
me; so was the strength of the Most High with me. When they saw
that it was of no avail, they fetched the hundred pound weight,
and hung it to my feet. Then went my heart to the Lord, "Keep,
keep, my treasure." In short, all their endeavors proved
fruitless. Then they asked whether I understood Latin. .I
replied, "Yes, as much as it <i>is." Ques.</i> "Do you understand
French?" <i>Ans."No." Ques.</i> "Where did you go to school?"
<i>Ans.</i> "At Delft." <i>Ques.</i> "When?" Ans."At the time
when Delft was burned." They also asked me whether I had read
the books of Menno or Dietrich Phillips?"Yes," I said; for
Boshuysen had taken my doctrinal books, namely, the <i>New
Creature,</i> by Menno, and the <i>Spiritual Restitution,</i>
by D. P. They asked me how I had come by it. My lips were
sealed. Then the order was, "Fetch water! candles! the dumb
devil must come out." But the Lord was my preserver, for which
I cannot thank Him enough. Sir. 43:30. Finally, the order was
given, "Loose him; he must cool off a little; we shall give it to
him better yet." As they were leaving I told them to take heed what they were doing; the day of the Lord
should also come upon them; thus they left me. My dear brethren
and sisters, herewith I bid you my last adieu, with the peace
of Christ. I would have written more, but time does not permit
me. If it pleases the Lord, I want to stand at the stake with
Him. The Lord be with you all. Amen.</p><br />

<h1>ADRIAEN DEN BURRY, A. D. 1565</h1>

<p>After manifold persecution and fearful tyranny against the
flock of Christ, there was also apprehended, in the year 1565,
at Oudenaerde, in Flanders, a faithful brother named Adriaen
den Burry, who, after undergoing and enduring manifold
temptations, and severe conflicts against the devil and his
tools, was burnt at said place, in the year 1565, and testified
to and confirmed the upright and genuine faith of the truth
with his death and blood, to the true conviction of all
bloodthirsty tyrants and persecutors, and all carnal men, who
seek to walk the broad way to eternal damnation, according to
the lusts of their flesh, and to the consolation and
strengthening of all true believers, that they might follow
this friend of God in true obedience, even as he followed
Christ, wherefore his name is written in the book of life, and
worthy to be recorded in this book, for long remembrance.</p>

<h2>WILLEM DE DUYCK, A. D. 1565</h2> 

<p>In the year 1565, at Ghent in Flanders, Brother Willem de
Duyck, after much tribulation and unwavering steadfastness,
being not willing to apostatize in any wise, also had to bear
witness with his blood to the name of Christ, and suffer
temporal death for it; wherefore he shall also, at the
resurrection, with all the children of God, hear the blessed
words, "Come, ye blessed of my Father, inherit the kingdom
prepared for you from the foundation of the world." Matt.
25:34. Then shall he as one of the righteous enter into life
eternal.</p>

<h2>CONRAD KOCH, A. D. 1565</h2> 

<p>This Conrad Koch was kindled with the light of the knowledge
of God, when this light, in these latter days, began to rise
again, along the River Rhine as well as in the country of Berg,
and the truth of the holy Gospel commenced to shine. Hence he
sought, by the divine help, to leave the darkness, and to walk
in this brightly shining light; he forsook popery and the
worldly and ungodly life, and betook himself to the church of
the Lord, heard and laid to heart the Word of the Lord,
believed the Gospel, and was baptized, according to the command
of Christ, upon faith in Christ Jesus, and confession of his
sins, and accordingly, conducted himself in a brotherly and
Christian manner in the church, and, in weakness, showed
himself edifying and honorable toward all men. But as lie that
walks in darkness cannot bear or endure the light, and the envy
of the adversary works in his</p>

</div><div id="688"> 

<p>followers, this man was envied by the papists, and accused
to the intendant of the revenue; who was judge and ruler of the
country in the name of the prince of Juelich. Thereupon the
intendant sent his servants to Houf, where Conrad lived, and
they apprehended him; he was ready, and as a lamb, willingly
went with them to Loewenburg, one of the seven castles which,
on account of their high situation, can be seen from a .great
distance. There they brought Conrad into the tower, and placed
him in severe confinement, in which he remained nearly half a
year; however, he was greatly comforted by the Lord, though he
had to suffer much hunger.</p>

<p>The intendant ofttimes browbeat him and threatened him most
severely, that his life should be taken if he should refuse to
renounce his faith. They tried him very hard with entreaties
and solicitations, then with hunger, and also with threats to
put him to death; but he remained inmovable. His heart was of
good cheer.</p>

<p>Now when he had boldly confessed his faith, and no tortures
could intimidate him, and the time drew near that he was to die
for the truth and depart from this world, the door of his
prison was opened, and he went of his own accord, free and
unfettered, from the tower of Loewenburg to the village of
Houf. His guide was Barabbas, that is a malefactor who went
with him. His departure took place in great secrecy; and thus
he came to Houf, which is some distance from Loewenburg. But
even as Christ was crucified, and Barabbas released, so it was
also here. Conrad was taken to the town hall of Houf, where it
was proposed to him, that if he should renounce his faith, his
young life should be spared, and his liberty be given him.</p>

<p>Manifold wiles were employed against him with great
deceitfulness. The sophists sang things sweet and sour,
saying, "Go to church at least once a year and if they do not
preach the pure and clear truth, stay away from it
thenceforth." One of these hypocrites said to Conrad, "My dear
Conrad, though we be false, subtle and evil, it cannot harm
your soul; do you only fear God and keep peace with all men;
what is it to you if our faith is little." Conrad replied to
the magistrates, "O you ministers of God, you must know that God
wants no hypocrites. This was seen exemplified in old Eleazar,
who would rather surrender his life than dissemble. II Macc.
6:24. Therefore .I also hope to die before I go into your
congregation." Conrad further said, "Christ is the Head of the
church; he that would please Him must show himself a member of
His body; now, one must not sever, himself from Christ the
Captain. With this Head I want to remain, though it cost my
flesh and blood." They asked Conrad what he thought of infant
baptism. He said, "Of this I can only think that it is also one
of the pope's greatest abominations; however if you can prove
it by the Word of God, I will suffer myself to be instructed by
the church of the Lord.""O God," said Conrad,"to Thee I bring my complaint; O God, what calamity this, that
they put to death those who speak the truth! They can certainly
not allege that I have committed anything criminal, and yet
they malignantly seek to kill me. O Lord, forgive them." The
mandate of the prince of Juelich was then read to him,
whereupon the judges passed sentence, upon which the intendant
broke the staff. The sentence was, that Conrad should suffer
death, if he did not recant. And when he had been thus
sentenced twice, they took him out [ to the place of
execution]. When he arrived there, he began to sing, "O God, how
gently Thou dost chasten me. Reach me Thy gracious hand, that
my flesh may now shun all sin, vice and shame, that I may rend
the old garment, and have eternal joy with Thee. Christ, I
praise Thee, O my supreme God, that I have lived to see this
day and hour, that I may now testify to Thy name with my blood.
My dear brethren and sisters, I commend you all to the Lord.
Keep the Gospel of Christ firmly fixed in your hearts; this I
leave you for an admonition: fear God, and be valiant; be my
followers, even as I am willing to follow Christ the Lord, and
to deliver up my life." And thus they put this pious man to
death with the sword secretly, so that many did not hear of it.
When thieves and murderers are condemned there it is customary
to let the whole land know it; but the pious are murdered in
secrecy, which is a shame for the judges. Thus Conradwas
beheaded with the sword standing and proved himself a faithful
witness of the sufferings of Christ, at Houf, in the land of
Berg, which belongs to the prince of Juelich and Cleves.</p>

<p>In the year 1565, under the same intendant, who was a very
bloodthirsty man, also seven other persons, four brethren and
three sisters, had been previously apprehended. These four
brethren were also sentenced that they should be put to death,
if they refused to renounce their faith. But the Lord protected
them, and delivered them all out of prison unharmed in their
faith, for this bloodthirsty tyrant was smitten by God with
sudden death, so that the prisoners were liberated from prison,
keeping their faith, and adhering to the truth.</p>

<h2>HERE FOLLOW TWO LETTERS WHICH CONRAD KOCH WROTE FROM PRISON</h2> 

<p class="c25">First Letter</p>

<p>Grace, peace and mercy from God the Father and the Lord
Jesus Christ, is what I, Conrad Koch, a prisoner in the Lord,
in Loewenburg, wish my dear brethren and sisters in the Lord.
Amen.</p>

<p>I herewith inform you, that I had a call from the
executioner, and they tried me hard with words, but did not
torture me. The Lord kept me, so that I did not consent to
them. Then they said that they would go to dinner, and then
return and torture me. But before meal time was over yet, the
intendant returned to me and told me much about the prince's
preacher, that I should let him come</p>

</div><div id="689"> 

<p>and see me once more, since he knew the errors which we
held. I replied, "I do not want him; the Word of the Lord has
taught me. Did I not tell you, that I want no preacher?" He
said, "It is true; but still I wish you would do my will so much
as to say that you want him to come to you. Though you do not
agree then, all right; it does not matter, so we only get rid
of the man." I replied, "I do not want to lay the cross of
Christ aside." Then he said, "Then I cannot alter it," and left
me.</p>

<p>Thus, my dear brethren and sisters in the Lord, did the Lord
preserve me from them. Pray the Lord faithfully for me, to keep
me in His faithful Word unto the end of my life, that I may
adhere to it; for I am still of good hope, and willing with all
patience to await, by the help of the Lord, all that He shall
suffer to befall and come upon me for His name's sake. May He
not suffer more to be laid upon me, than I am able to bear,
that His name may not be blasphemed through me. Hence help me
entreat the Lord; I expect also not to forget to remember all
my dear brethren and sisters, nor all those that fear the Lord.
May the Lord come to our*assistance, that we may pray according
to His will, so that we may be heard with all the pious; to
this end, may the Lord help us by His grace. Amen.</p>

<p>I have also been informed that our fellow members at Cologne
have been released from prison; the Lord be praised for His
great love which He manifests toward us in these latter days,
preserving us so safely from the deceitful serpents, who come
to us so subtly with fair words, which are nothing but mere
hypocrisy employed by them to seduce us from the covenant of
the Lord. From this, may the Lord preserve all those who have
accepted 'His covenant. Amen. Herewith I commend you to the
Lord.</p>

<h2>THE SECOND LETTER, WRITTEN TO HIS BROTHER A. OF B.</h2> 

<p>Grace, peace, and a heart steadfastly fixed upon the Lord,
is what I wish you, A. of B., my dear brother in the Lord, and
I thank the Lord for the letter you wrote me. Thanks to the
Lord for it, and I also request of you, my dear brother, that
you help me to entreat the Lord, that I may become worthy of
what you wished me, and desired of me. However, I still have a
good hope, thanks to the Lord for it. I also am still willing
to suffer -for His name's sake; but may He give me strength for
it. Amen.</p>

<p>I also desire you, my dear brother, to wish our brother H.
K. much good in my name. May the Lord make us worthy of every
good thing; however, I cannot write you as much as I should
like to see you have. May the Lord, according to His great
mercy, give us what will tend to our salvation. Amen. And I ask
you to wish all my brethren and sisters with whom the Lord will
cause you to come in contact, much good, and to admonish them to
faithfully pray the Lord, to uphold me in His faithful Word
until death. I expect not to forget to remember you, as much as
shall be possible for me. May the Lord assist us to pray in
true love, so that we may be heard, and hereafter, with all the
pious, inherit His kingdom; to this end, may the Lord help us.
Amen.</p>

<p>I also inform you, that on Hallowe'en two priests visited
me, who desired to take me to church; and when I did not
consent to it, they commended me to the Lord; there were also
three judges here, and did their best; but the Lord preserved
me, praise and thanks to Him for it, and may He preserve you
and me as long as we live. Amen. O my dear brethren and
sisters, beseech the Lord diligently for me, that, since He
suffers me, unworthy servant, to be cast into prison, it may
redound to His praise, and to my salvation; this I desire with
all my heart. May the Lord come to your and my assistance.</p>

<p>Herewith I commend you to the Lord, and to the Word of His
grace. Amen.</p>

<p>I, Conrad Koch, have written this letter from Loewenburg, in
prison, A. D. 1565.</p><br />

<h1>MATTHIAS SERVAES, OF KOTTENEM, A. D. 1565</h1>

<p>As this Matthias Servaes was an elder and teacher of the
church, it happened, A. D. 1565, that one evening he had met
with some friends at a certain place in Cologne, to minister
unto them with the Gospel. But there was a Judas, to whom this
was known; the same went and fetched the double watch, who
immediately came fully armed, and entering the house in which
the meeting was held from the rear, broke up the meeting and
captured the flock, with beating, raging and fury; but those
assembled went with them like sheep, to the Beyen tower. There
all their names were taken down, and they were brought into
other, separate places. They were asked with great importunity,
who their teacher was; in response to which question, Matthias
Servaes himself confessed that he was the man. They sought to
draw him from Christ and His holy Word, attempting it in
various ways, with deception and subtilty, with entreaties and
threats; and as he repelled all these wiles, he was severely
tortured; however, he was not terrified by any torture or pain,
but firmly kept in his heart that which God had revealed to
him. Afterwards, in the morning, he was taken to prison, where
also many a snare was laid to catch his soul. From prison he
was brought bound before the penal court, where the imperial
mandates were read to him, and he was delivered into the power
of the executioner, to be put to death by the latter, according
to the mandate.</p>

<p>Matthias was ready, and suffered himself to be led like an
innocent lamb to the slaughter. He lifted up his eyes toward
heaven, folding his hands, and said, "O my Father, I praise Thy
name, that I am counted worthy of this."</p>

</div><div id="690"> 

<p>Much people flocked together, to see this; some of them felt
sympathy for him, and said, "It is a pity indeed, that this fine
man has to die for such a deed."</p>

<p>On the way a young woman happened along, who wanted to speak
to him; but they apprehended her, and thrust her from him. Afro
a lad wanted to greet him, whom they seized likewise, but the
count commanded them to let him go. Before he arrived at the
place of execution, he looked around him and said, "I have many
people present on my day. It were a pity indeed, if all these
should perish." And when he was now about td die, he said
aloud, "O God, Thou dost know iull well, for what I have striven
and what I have sought in my life, from the beginning, day and
night." And to the count he said. 'fi'ou well know, sir
count, how you have treated me; but I have forgiven you all; it
is all out of my heart." And thus terminated the life of this
pious man, he being executed with the sword. Now, as to what
was his confession before and afterwards, what he met with in
prison, and how he admonished, comforted and strengthened his
brethren, all this may be found in the following letters
written by him.</p>

<h2>THE FIRST LETTER, WHICH MATTHIAS SERVAES WROTE FROM PRISON TO H. K., HIS BROTHER IN THE LORD, AND ALSO TO HIS OTHER FELLOW MEMBERS</h2> 

<p>The saving grace of God and the peace of our Lord and
Saviour Jesus Christ, be multiplied to all believers, through
the ministration and unction of the Holy Ghost. Amen.</p>

<p>Further, my most beloved brethren in the Lord, I inform you
that I am still very well, both according to the flesh and the
spirit, in body and in soul, outwardly and inwardly. For I
esteem it all very good whether it be joy or sorrow, yea, life
or death; for I live not to myself, nor do I die to myself; for
whether I live, I live unto the Lord, and whether I die, I die
unto the Lord; for I am in His hand, and I am sure that no man
shall pluck me out of it; yea, I now look upon death as gain; I
have a desire to depart, and to be with Christ, my Lord; for
whatever I meet with, all tends to my comfort. Romans 14:7, 8;
II Cor. 5:15; John 10:28; Phil. 1: 21, 23. I am now confined
here for the promotion of the Gospel, and my bonds become
manifest only to the praise of the Lord, I trust, and not to
mine own, and to the consolation of all the pious that are
under like chastisement, and to the strengthening of their
purpose. Hence I rejoice in my sufferings, that I am counted
worthy by the Lord to suffer reproach for His name (of which I
nevertheless count myself unworthy), to fill up that which is
behind of His afflictions, and entailed on His members.
Colossians 1:24. And as the sufferings of Christ abound in us,
so I find my consolation abounding much more by Christ, who
abundantly comforts me in all my sufferings, and by His
help I shall succeed, and also all those who recognize Him as the
supreme good, and are thereby induced to love Him above all, so
that they gladly hate and depart from everything for His sake,
that they may be loved only by the Lover. That we may do all
this from filial love, this I wish you and me, and all those
who sincerely desire it, through Jesus Christ, firmly and
unwaveringly unto the end. Amen.</p>

<p>Further, my L: B. H., and all that are appointed to watch
over the souls of men, exercise your office with diligence,
that you may not be found slothful, drowsy or negligent in it;
but that you may be faithful watchmen, who truly and honestly
lead out and feed the flock of Christ, and this with all
humility and meekness; yea, as a father over his children who
severely reproves the wrong-doing of his children; and though
he cannot bring them to the point where he would like to have
them, yet his fatherly nature will not allow him to forget
them, ro that he should not regard them as his children; and
though his heart is often grieved by their disobedience and
folly, he does not cease to chasten and instruct them, hoping
that they will yet become obedient; and though it causes him
much sadness and sorrow, he does not regard it, nor ceases to
admonish, chasten and correct them. Thus do also you; give
attendance to reading, to exhortation, to reproof, and this
with all discretion, in the fear of the Lord, not too severely,
lest they become embittered; neither too leniently, lest they
wax slothful and negligent. I Tim. 4:13; Col. 3:21. Hence apply
to them oil and wine, as did the true Samaritan to the wounded
man. I think you understand what I mean. Be therefore not
slothful or careless with the gift that has been bestowed upon
you; be faithful to Him that has esteemed you faithful, and
accepted you as His ministers, and stewards of His mysteries.
But it is required in stewards, that a man be found faithful.
Hence be diligent laborers of the Lord in His vineyard, and
faithful builders in His house. And put the pound which you
have received from the Lord diligently out upon usury, and
remember the punishment of the slothful servant, who did not
give his money into the bank, but put it into a napkin and hid
it in the earth.</p>

<p>Remember it, I say, my dear brethren, and let it be a
warning to you, even as Solomon says that the field of the
slothful, and the vineyard of the man void of understanding
were a warning to him, when he says, "I went by the field of the
slothful, and by the vineyard of the man void of understanding;
and, lo, it was all grown over with thorns, and nettles had
covered the face thereof, and the stone wall thereof was broken
down. Then I saw, and considered it well: I looked upon it and
received instruction." Prov. 24:30-32. Thus also you, my dear
brethren. be careful, and diligently dig through the vineyard
of the Lord, with the plow or the hoe which breaks in pieces
the hard stones, which is the word of God. (Jer. 23:29); so
that the nettles and thorns may not oppress, destroy or choke
the good seed that has been sown. Take also the sharp,</p>

</div><div id="691"> 

<p>two-edged sword (Eph. 6:17) , and cut off clean the
unfruitful, evil and dry branches, that the others may be more
healthy and vigorous to bring forth fruit. Inspect also
carefully the wall of the vineyard; if it begins to give way
anywhere, prop up that part; if there are any openings in it,
go to work and close them; and if it has. fallen down in any
place, build it up again speedily, that the little foxes may
not run into the Lord's vineyard, and dig up and spoil it.
Cant. 2:15. And what more shall I say? Faithfully feed the
flock of Christ, and watch with all carefulness over the souls
of men. I Pet. 5:2. Take heed also, that you administer needed
reproof, and act and judge without respect of persons, and
remember that judgment is God's and not yours. Deut. 1:17.
Weigh, therefore, every matter in the balance of the divine
Word: so that when you reprove, judge, or forgive anything, it
may be truly reproved, judged or forgiven also before the
judgment of God, and thus your reproof agree with God's
reproof, your judgment with God's judgment, and your
forgiveness with God's forgiveness. Take heed also, that you do
not carry avoidance too far, lest it prove a stumbling-block to
you. For avoidance is good indeed if it is not abused; however
its purpose is solely to avoid offenses (to which end it is
instituted);' hence we must take heed that we do not, while
seeking to avoid little offenses by it, cause greater ones.
Matt. 18:15-17; 1 Cor. 5:11; II Thess. 3:14. Bestow great
attention upon the first commandment with promise,
namely, "Children, obey your parents in the Lord." Eph. 6:1.
This is an express word; hence be careful herein. Show a
friendly face to all apostates, and admonish them with all
kindness to that which they have surrendered and forsaken, and
from which they have fallen: I mean such as receive admonition;
for blasphemers and mockers are to be left alone. II Thess.
3:15;, Tit. 3:10.</p>

<p>Dear brethren, I do not write you this as something new, but
to remind you of the old; for I should like.to see carefulness
exercised, and that one Scripture should not be observed so
strictly and rigidly as thereby .to violate another. For
sometimes some resort to avoidance all on a sudden, without the
least discretion, and pity for the fallen. Hence I advise
carefulness. For if we are to have the mind of our Lord Jesus;
yea, are to be perfect as our Father in heaven is perfect, then
let us from the heart consider His longsuffering, and how He
has borne with us, and let us also show ourselves thus toward
our fellow servant, that we may give offense to no one, neither
to the world, nor to the church of God. Phil. 2:3, 5; Matt.
5.:48; Col. 3:12; Matt. 18:29; I Cor. 10:32. And be also not
slothful in seeking .men's souls; wherever you have some hope,
there go. Say not, "It will be labor lost." Put your hand to the
plow first, in the fear of the Lord, and ask Him to give the
blessing; but you do the planting and watering. Pray the Lord
to give the increase. And if then your endeavors are
unsuccessful, you are free. For I have often felt accused, that we have not much more sought men's
souls, to the praise of the Lord.</p>

<p>O brother, beware of contentious tongues. Wherever you go,
there make peace, if it can be done by the grace of God. O my
dear brother, how greatly I am grieved on account of what was
done in.the upper country. Not, that you should think that I am
doubtful; Oh, no, my brother; for I am still of the same mind
as indicated in the letter which I wrote to them; but I am
fearful simply of the discord, by which many who would like to
see it remedied, and are innocent, might perish. I do not know
what account can be given for this before God. Oh, that those
who are found guilty in this matter might fall down, with
weeping before God, and repent of their sins! I am also
concerned about the' lower country, and should like to see them
helped, and put under good order, for I find them still wanting
in many things; yet I sincerely love them, but I should like to
see them yet put off much of their pride, and that they would
consider what kind of people they ought to be, and to what they
are called, so as to govern themselves accordingly, and that.
the. elders do not stay at home when meeting is held. I do not
say that it can be remedied right away. Do you also heartily
receive it? O my dear brethren, be little and low, in your own
eyes, and be not self-complacent, so as to think: I have done
this, and the like. It is nothing; the Lord, and He alone, does
all things, and this by man. Hence, give Him alone the praise.
And let no one esteem himself better than others; yea, let each
esteem other better than themselves. And let all submit one to
another, and in lowliness of mind let each serve the other.
Phil. 2:3; Eph. 5:21. .And I desire of all brethren and
sisters, that they beware of all,those who leave the church.
And if you can tell L: to advise with himself in the time of
grace; for how shall he be able to give an account in the day
of judgment? For his own conscience, if he properly considers
the matter, will accuse him. O L., O L., come back; for you are
not in the best way. O my brethren, how much I had to suffer on
account of the many factions! Hence beware of</p>

<p>divisions. Seek peace, if you can, and ensue it. I Pet.
3:11.</p>

<p>O my dear brethren, what liars I have had before me!
Cassander, a man little and feeble of body, who led astray
Joachim Suycherbacker, visited me, and laid many. little
snares, to take captive my mind. He read to me a book printed
in Latin, which stated that infant baptism was considered a
clear commandment and a unanimous practice throughout the whole
world, no one gainsaying it, and he declared, though not with
power of divine Scripture, that they had received it from the
apostles; and when I denied this with the New Testament, they
asked me, how, if I denied and did not believe this, I could
believe that the New Testament was true; for, said he, we had
the latter from them, who recognized infant baptism as right;
and that there had been many other writings that</p>

</div><div id="692"> 

<p>were also called apostolical, but were nevertheless not
acknowledged as authentic, but rejected by them, but that they
testified that all teachers confessed that this (namely, the
New Testament,) was the true apostolical doctrine, as also
their baptism. They wanted to know, how, if we meant to reject
one, we would maintain the other; for, said they, you must
believe it from them, else you could not know it. Thus, also
with baptism; and he further said that if we were right, it
would follow from it, that there was no church for 1,500
years.</p>

<p>Of this nearly all treated who conversed with me: for many
and various persons visited me. There was there one who, as
they said, had just come from Egypt; him they also brought to
me, and he claimed that in Egypt they had received infant
baptism from the eunuch who was baptized by Philip, and that he
knew of no other baptism; but that if an adult person that had
not been baptized desired baptism, the faith should first be
presented to such an one. This, they said, had always been the
sole practice there, and that if any one opposed it, they said
to him, " We have this practice from the apostles." But I denied
it all with the New Testament, and said, that whatever agreed
with the same, I would gladly accept, and believe by the help
of God; and nothing else. Then I had to hear again, that the
New Testament had been handed down to us by the teachers;
otherwise, if we did not have it from them, we could not tell
whether it were true or false. This they said many times. I
replied to them: It did not avail the King of Assyria anything,
that God used him for the conversion of his people, since he
did not become converted himself. Isaiah 10:5. Thus also it did
not help Pharaoh, in his wickedness, that the power of God was
made known and manifest to him. Thus, also, Caiaphas was not
benefitted by his prophecy concerning Christ (though the same
was true), because he himself was not ebedient to the doctrine
of Christ. With this I gave God alone the praise, saying that
we had His Word from Him. Thereupon they began to seek to move
me by many entreaties and solicitations; but when they could
accomplish nothing thereby, they commenced to threaten me
severely; and when they perceived that all this was of no
avail, but only labor lost, they tortured me and our Brother
Herman, which happened on the 17th of July. But thanks be to
the good God-who does not forsake His own, but, in time of
suffering and affliction, comforts them at the right time-He
kept our lips, so that they did not obtain one word (according
to their will) from us, concerning what they asked us. Herman,
however, was soon released. The chief reason why we were
tortured, was, that we should tell how many teachers there
were, what their names were, where they lived, where in the
city I had taught, how many I had baptized, where the ministry
was imposed upon me, and what teachers were present upon that occasion; and that I should acknowledge the
magistrates as Christians, and infant baptism as right. Then I
pressed my lips together, committed it to God, and suffered
patiently, remembering the words of the Lord, where fie
says, "Greater love hath no man than this, that a man lay down
his life for his friends. Ye are my friends, if ye do
whatsoever I command you." John 1 5:13, 14. I also remembered
that John says that we ought to lay down our lives for the
brethren, I John 3:16. It seems as though I must suffer much
yet; however, the Lord alone holds it in His hand; nor can I
pray otherwise than that the will of the Lord be done.</p>

<p>O my brethren, knowledge or talk is of no account here, but
a living faith which is adorned with the power of love,
patience, hope, and with obedience, and that through the power
of faith one can say with the three men Shadrach, Meshach and
Abednego: O Nebuchadnezzar, we are not careful to answer-thee
in this matter. If it be so, our God, whom we serve, is able to
deliver us from the burning fiery furnace, and He will deliver
us out of thine hand, O king. But if not, be it known unto
thee, (O antichrist) that we will not serve thy god, nor
worship the image, or the two golden calves which thou hast set
up.,Dan. 3:16-18. And that, if they should attempt to instruct
one with high-sounding words of human wisdom, yea, with soft
words and entreaties (Col. 2:4, 8), we could say through the
power of .faith, "Begone, I want none of your advice: and should
then keep his lips sealed. But if one enters into more
discussion with them than necessity requires, he will not
escape unharmed. Hence I wish that all prisoners were
instructed in this matter."</p>

<p>Few days pass that we do not talk together; yet, I observed
as much brevity as possible in confessing and speaking, though
frequent three or four hours were spent in this manner. ~ warn
all prisoners, whenever you can, that they refuse everything;
and remember us day and night, by praying to God. Thus we are
also minded toward you, and I desire that you greet all
believers much with the kiss of love, in our name.</p>

<p>Oh, how all believers lie at my heart, so that I very seldom
forget them; yea, I remember them with earnest prayers and
requests (as much as is possible to me through the grace of
God) before the Lord. I cannot write you much, for writing is
more precious than gold with me. Do not write us; as to the
reason why, ponder it yourselves. The God of Israel keep you
and us. Amen.</p>

<p>Matthias Servaes, your brother and prisoner of the Lord for
the truth's sake. As regards the children the bringing up of
whom devolves upon the church, I adhere to the opinion you have
heard of me. The grace of our Lord Jesus Christ be with,us all.
Amen.</p>

</div><div id="693"> 

<h2>THE SECOND LETTER WHICH MATTHIAS SERVAES, OF KOTTENEM WROTE IN PRISON TO HIS BROTHER</h2> 

<p>The saving grace of God be with us all. Amen. I desire that
as soon as possible a Dutch Testament be procured for my wife
(who then was not imprisoned), for she cannot read the German
print.</p>

<p>Further, my dear brother, I inform you that I am. alone now,
but the Lord is with me. It seems evident to me, that I shall
have little opportunity of seeing our brethren that are also
imprisoned, and it is quite probable that for the first my
condition shall not be the best. Hence I know not how to thank
God enough, and though I should like to be with my brethren,
yet I prefer it much more as it is; for since it pleases God
thus, I also deem it the best and most conducive to my
salvation. And though it grieves me not a little, yet I do not
count it pain, because the Lord has so ordered it with me. The
following Thursday, the same morning that they brought me, at a
very early hour, from the Franken tower, to our prison, our
brethren were also to be tortured, for the tapers and
candlesticks stood near the rack, and everything was ready; but
when they brought me there, they began to talk with me, and to
question me; and before they had done questioning me, and I had
confessed my faith and office before many of them, and, in
turn, had also put many questions to them, to which I was
impelled by certain reasons, half the day had slipped by, and
after long and much talking, when they could not answer me any
further (for which I gave the praise to God alone, and not to
me), one of them (he who had chiefly done the questioning and
talking) said to me that baptism was our greatest error.
Thereupon I replied, "If that is our greatest error, and you
-therefore apprehend and rack us, why do you not first place
the abominable errors and ungodly life of the priests by the
side of ours, and then judge one against the other, without
respect of persons, as before the eyes and the judgment of God;
and, whichever error then be found the greater, visit summary
punishment upon it (if you have any for it)." But he did not
deign me a reply.</p>

<p>When I perceived this, I said, "We are nevertheless also
human beings, and you no more; nor can I, from fear of God,
esteem you more than men. Hence, consider fhe matter well, and
do not deal so cruelly and tyrannically with us; for the Lord
will visit and punish all violence, and He is the judge over
all this. Amos 5:12. Remember also, that in due time you will
have to let us stand by the side of you, when the Lord will
judge you and us together; for, as the Scripture says, we shall
all stand before the judgment.seat of Christ; and there
everyone shall receive in his body, according to that he hath
done, whether it be good or bad. Rom. 14:10; II Cor. 5:16. Yes,
then your judgment will appear again, and be sifted there by
the Lord. And I desire of you, my dear sir, that you do not
take this as an insolent answer or threat, but accept it as a warning;
for as such I say it to you, because I wish you eternal rest,
as well as I wish it to my own soul. Therefore lay it well to
heart, and take good heed how you deal with us." Here it
rested, and thus our brethren were for this time exempted from
torture, and I put in their stead. They led me to the rack
(where I still lie) and wanted to torture me simply because I
would not tell where I had been with Henry last, .and how many
teachers there were, and where they lived. When they had asked
me this many times, I wanted to know of them the reason, why
they were so anxious to know it; whereupon the count replied to
me, "If we were to tell you this, you would probably answer that
you did not want to betray any one." Then I said, "You answer yourself;" after which I spoke several times
with him yet. As they persisted in demanding to know this, and
the sole object was treachery, I determined to give the matter
into their hands before proceeding to confess; hence I told
them to retire into their own hearts and confess the truth, as
before God in heaven, and then to say whether they would or
dared advise me this. In this manner T asked them several
times, but received no answer; and thus they desisted and
turned away from me, and said among themselves, "The matter were
well enough, if it would not finally give rise to an
insurrection."</p>

<p>I commend you all to God. I have not the time, for the
present, to write you more. Remember us always before the Lord.
Amen.</p>

<h2>MATTHIAS SERVAES, OF KOTTENEM THE THIRD LETTER OF MATTHIAS SERVAES, WRITTEN TO J. N.</h2> 

<p>Peace and joy in the heart, through the operation of the
Holy Ghost, be multiplied unto you, and unto all believers that
are in Christ Jesus. Amen. Yea, also unto those who are willing
to recognize God as the supreme good, and desire, solely from
love, as an obedient child his father, to serve and follow Him
with a true and firm confidence, through faith in Jesus Christ,
steadfastly and immovably unto the end. Amen.</p>

<p>Dear brethren, we have received the breakfast you sent us,
thanks to God for it. I send you in return a little out of my
poverty; receive it also with thanks, and communicate it to our
other fellow members, wherever it is profitable for edification
and improvement, wherever it is needful, wherever it is
edifying for the hearers. Whenever you compose, write or speak
anything, do all to the praise of the Lord, and compose it for
a hymn of thanksgiving, through Christ, to the God of heaven,
that He has given His people such a faith, which is not dead,
but works by love, so that they have forsaken and hated
everything, and out of love (such as a child owes to his
father), adhered faithfully to their God even unto death. But
leave out the count and everything else, as much as possible;
for he</p>

</div><div id="694"> 

<p>says that he has been villified in the hymn of Thomas the
printer which was certainly not the intention, though it is
taken thus. He says that though he meant it well, he was
reprehended for it by many. Therefore, my brother, whatever you
do in word and in deed, do all to the praise of the Lord, and
give thanks to God the Father through Him.</p>

<p>Furthermore, my dear brother, I inform you, that Henry
Altruyscher, who resides in the Egelstein, and generally
retails red wine there, has been here to see me. He entered
into conversation with me, and wanted to know whence I had my
office or ministry. But I recognized him, and wanted him to
tell me his name. He said he did not know that. But I asked
further, and said, "Do not people call you Henry?" He said
several times that he did not know: Then I told him to go away
and repent, since I did not want to talk with him. The count
was displeased, and incensed at me, and determined to persuade
me to engage in conversation with Altruyscher; but I said, "No;
I will not do it."</p>

<p>I wanted to inform you of this very briefly, my dear
brother; for I have not time to write much; besides, I am
closely watched. And I desire that you walk steadfastly in the
fear of God, with all humility, meekness, kindness, and
goodness. And do not please yourself; but much rather endeavor
to please your neighbor for his good to edification; and tell
this also to the others. Herewith I commend you to the grace of
God. Remember us in your prayers before the Lord, as also we,
through the grace of God, are purposed to do for you and all
men, as much as the Word of the Lord teaches us. But the God of
peace and of all grace, who has called us unto His eternal
glory by Christ Jesus, make us perfect in every good work, to
do His eternal, immovable will, and cause that our works may be
pleasing in His sight, through Jesus Christ. Yea, may the same
also confirm, strengthen, stablish, and prepare us who are
ready here to suffer, through Him, reproach for His name's
sake, if this is to be. To Him be honor and might forever.
Amen. Otherwise, we are still well in body and soul. We are in
good hopes that we shall help fulfill the number of those that
lie under the altar, and shall rest with them, and wait for the
glorious reward of all the pious. Greet the brotherhood in
Christ Jesus, in my name. The grace of God be with us all.
Amen.</p>

<h2>MATTHIAS SERVAES, OF KOTTENEM THE FOURTH LETTER, WHICH MATTHIAS SERVAES WROTE FROM PRISON TO ALL BRETHREN AND SISTERS IN GENERAL</h2> 

<p>The grace of God that bringeth salvation, and the peace of
Jesus Christ; be multiplied unto all believers that are
scattered here and there, according to the foreknowledge of God
the Father, sanctified and justified through faith in Jesus
Christ His dear Son, and washed in His own blood from all our sins, in order
that we should henceforth be holy and without blame before Him
in love, to His praise and honor, now and forever. Amen.</p>

<p>O my most affectionately beloved brethren and sisters in the
Lord, we ought justly to thank God the Father without ceasing
day and night, through Jesus Christ His Son, for our salvation,
yea, for the fatherly grace He has shown us, and has foreseen
and ordained us from the beginning, before the foundation of
the world, that we should be holy and without blame before Him
in love, which latter He did not forget to show us. Though for
a time we regarded Him but little, yet He, according to His
goodness (as He alone is good) did not forget us. Yea, when we
were dead through infirmities and sins, He called us to life;
and this not according to our works (for these were evil), but
according to His great mercy he saved us; and while we were
sinners, He reconciled us by the death of His Beloved. And
though we have set at naught and disregarded all this, He
notwithstanding, at the end of the world, yea in these evil
days and deplorable times, now that wickedness is at its
height, has manifested His longsuffering toward us, and
not desired our death (nor that of any sinner), but that we
should be converted, and live, and commit the keeping of our
souls to Him in well-doing, as unto a faithful Creator and
Shepherd. Hence it behooves us, dear brethren and sisters, that
we attend in the fear of God to the calling wherein we are
called; for we are called with a holy calling; mark, to what:
not to uncleanness, not to lasciviousness, not to fornication,
not to gluttony, not to carousing, not to pomp and pride, that
one should please himself, or put on a pleasing appearance
before others, in order thereby to seek praise with men, which
praise is not of God, but contrary to God;' for all the
above-mentioned points, if we practice them, shut us out from
the kingdom of God. Neither are we called to covetousness,
which is idolatry, that we should lay up treasures for
ourselves, and seek riches, that we should prepare an earthly,
present kingdom, or to trust in uncertain riches, and thus be
conformed to the world. Mark, he says: <i>to the world.</i> But
whom does the world serve? Who is its lord? Who is its prince?
What does Christ say on this subject? He calls the devil the
prince of this world. What is it like, with all its glory, the
iust of the eyes, and its pride? It is like the grass with its
beautiful flowers, which today is pleasant, green and glorious
to behold; but in the morning, yea, also in the evening, all
its beauty and all its glory are vanished. Thus it is also with
all the comeliness of man; but few know themselves. I speak not
only of those that are without, but include also ourselves. For
who is there that, if riches come to him, does not to some
extent set his heart upon them? Or who does sincerely pray with
King Solomon, "Lord, give me neither riches nor poverty; but
give me only that which I need." Prov. 30:8. Oh, consider it
well,</p>

</div><div id="695"> 

<p>all you who profess to be Christians, and give diligence to
walk with a pure conscience in the truth before God, that in
the melting furnace (if you should get into it yet) you will
have no regrets to cause you to prove dross, or to look back.
For, my dear brethren, in this trial a dead faith is of no
account, however glorious the same may seem in the eyes of men,
and with however many Scriptures it may be clearly
demonstrated, and professed with the mouth; much less will it
avail before a strict God and His righteous judgment; for
whatever is to stand here and there must be genuine; yea, it
must be done through a living faith which works by love. And
such a faith is not in him who does not firmly grasp God, and
believe and confess that heaven and earth, and all creatures,
the sea and all that therein is, owe to Him praise and
blessing, thanks and honor (to Him alone, and to none else, I
say, it is due).; and who does not write it in his heart and
inmost thoughts, and learns to know himself, that he is
preeminently created and made exalted and glorious, namely in
the image of God and after His likeness, a possessor and ruler
of the things that in this world are created for Him; yea,
adorned and endowed with reason and knowledge, to discern
between good and evil, and to know Him who is the Creator of
all things, and who has given us our free will, whereby we
present ourselves to Him, not by constraint, as other
creatures, but in voluntary surrender, and from pure, filial
love, thus, "Lord, here am I; what wilt thou have me to do? For
I acknowledge that I owe it to serve Thee, and to do only Thy
will, with all my ability, yea with all my strength, so that I
am to withhold nothing in this earth, whatever it be, not even
my life, nor to refuse in my thoughts to pay Thee the willing
debt of obedience, which I owe to Thee, and am to give Thee,
not because I expect a reward from Thee, but only that I show
thereby that I love Thee; so that we learn to hate all visible
things for the Lover's sake, that we may love Him alone above
all, and may also be loved by Him."</p>

<p>I write this, my brethren and sisters, in order that we may
learn to know God, and why He created man, yea, what He
requires of him that he shall do and not do, and why we are to
show Him love and obedience; so that we may not seek
righteousness or salvation from our works, from what we do or
not do; for by the works of the law shall no flesh be justified
before the Lord, as Paul says. Gal. 2:16. Nor shall we be able
to pay what we owe; but we hope to be justified and saved only
through the grace of God, through the merits of our Lord Jesus
Christ. Acts 15:11. . Hence let everyone take heed that (as
said above) he so love God, that he obey Him only from such
love, without hoping for a reward for any works or merits of
his own; but let him commit everything to Him, so that He may
give us what He will, and do with us what is well-pleasing to
Him. If we are thus resigned in everything, we shall not miss
it, and our hope will not be vain, but sure. But if this (as said) be
not found thus with us, though we speak with the tongues of men
and of angels, and have a faith so that we could remove
mountains, and bestow all our goods upon the poor, and give our
bodies to be burnt, what is it all if it is a work of
constraint, and not a voluntary work of love?</p>

<p>Therefore wake up, all you that have to be driven to piety
like horses and mules, that must be driven and beaten to the
field. As soon as driving and beating is left off, there is no
more work. Oh, the unfaithful Christians and slothful servants,
who have in their faith no more force to work than that if they
are told, "Do this and leave undone that;" they are impelled to
take a few steps forward. I say, alas! for such poor
Christians, that do not drive themselves! Hence let also those
'take good heed who show liberality or minister of their
substance, that the Pharisaical trumpet of boasting be not
blown or heard before them; for if any showeth mercy, let him
do it with cheerfulness and gladness; and if any giveth, let
him do it with simplicity (Rom. 12:8) without seeking any
glory, for it is a work which we are in duty bound to show to
our neighbor out of love. Therefore, all our works are to be
done in love, that we may not show such ministration through
hope of reward, but from sincere love and mercy. For it is not
man's but the Lord's. I Cor. 10:26. Hence I believe that if
righteousness came by our works, then Christ would have died in
vain; but God forbid. Gal. 2:21. Therefore let also every one
that receives such benefactions, take heed, for Christ says, "Ye
gave me meat, ye gave me drink, ye clothed me, ye took me in."
Matt. 25:35. Hence if we give food or drink to Christ, they who
receive such benefaction must be ingrafted members of Christ.
And if one receives the ministration who is none of His, how
will he be able to answer for it when he is placed before
Him?</p>

<p>Hence, you that receive the alms dispose of them in the fear
of the Lord, that you may be able to stand before God; for
there account and answer must be rendered for everything. And
watch diligently over the poor, and over the forsaken widows
and orphans, and let them have a place in your heart, as your
own children.</p>

<p>Remember the words of Sirach where he says, "Be as a father
unto the fatherless, and instead of a husband unto their
mother: so shalt thou be as a son _of the Most High, and he
shall love thee more than thy mother doth." Sir. 4:10. Beware
also with all diligence that no discriminating may be found to
exist among you, in the matter of bringing up, and of showing
love; for herein some err greatly so that it is not a service
of love, but of constraint; which is not pleasing to God.</p>

<p>And I desire of the widows, that they be quiet and attend to
their business, and not think that they are more than others.
No, that is neither the meaning nor intention of Paul (I Tim.
5:3), but this is what is meant."That they should be watched
over,</p>

</div><div id="696"> 

<p>and counsel and instruction given them, if they need such,
and that they should also follow brotherly advice, and beware
of unprofitable conversation, of wantonness, and of the lust of
the flesh; also of slothfulness, and going about from house to
house, for this, first of all, ought not to be, and she that is
a widow indeed, and desolate, will also beware of it; and she
trusteth in God alone, and continueth in supplications and
prayers to God day and .night; but she that liveth in pleasure
is dead while,she liveth."</p>

<p>I also sincerely desire of all believing brethren that have
wives (over whom they are placed as the head, even as Christ is
the Head of His church), that you watch over them; and
diligently attend to your office, so that you may rule your
house, and your wives, even as Christ His church.</p>

<p>Thus also, you wives, watch with all carefulness, and attend
with discreet prudence to youri office,into which you are
placed by the.Lord;-that you be obedient unto your husbands as
unto the Lord, so that you may be able to stand, before the
righteous God; and, bring up your children in such a manner
that you can account for it before God; and beware of being too
indulgent towards them, lest you. incur the same punishment
before the Lord as did Eli, who also was too indulgent towards
his sons. Ephesians 5:22; Sir. 7:23, 24.</p>

<p>Likewise you children, obey' your parents in the fear of God
with all humility; and do not set yourselves against them, lest
you incur the wrath and displeasure of God, like the sons of
Eli, like Absalom, Esau, and others like them.</p>

<p>In like manner, I also desire of all manservants and
maidservants that you be obedient in all things to your masters
according to the flesh, not with eyeservice, as men-pleasers,
but in singleness of heart, and in the fear of God; and
remember that you are serving the Lord and not men, for of the
Lord you shall receive the just reward. Eph. 6:5-8.</p>

<p>Thus also, you masters, forbear your, threatening, and do to
your servants whatever is right and equitable, and know that
you also have a Master in heaven with whom there is no respect
of persons. Eph. 6:9. Consider if you were servants as you then
would have your masters do unto you, even so do now to them.
Matt. 7:12. But finally, dear brethren, order your lives and
strive to walk only so that it will be conformable to the
Gospel of our Lord Jesus Christ. And since we are to be a
chosen generation, and a holy nation, acceptable to the Lord as
His peculiar people (I Pet. 2:9), that we should walk. before
Him as lights, and should also be a light unto the world;
therefore it is necessary for us to give diligence that we may
in every respect be found holy and blameless before Him, so
that we may see the city of God exalted above all the mountains
of unrighteousness that are seen in righteousness, and that it
may in no wise be hid: Hence, let also become manifest now the
holy radiahce of the divine brightness, before all that are
still walking in darkness and show yourselves to all men a pattern of good works, and do not suffer the gift
given you by God to remain idle or unemployed but put it out
upon usury with the greatest diligence; for the Lord, from whom
you have received it, will, at His coming, require it back from
you with gain and usury. Matt. 25:14. O my brethren, and all
fellow members in Christ, watch diligently, and have your ears
open to learn when something may be gained, and grudge not to
toil and labor for it, for you will also partake of the gain,
yea, you will as faithful servants, be adjudged to eternal joy.
But a servant should nevertheless be prudent, that he do not
carelessly invest his Lord's money, but with all prudence, yea,
with fear and trembling, and he should always before he invests
it, consider and calculate whether it may bring gain or loss,
lest the Lord's money be eventually lost through carelessness.
And since the Lord will require His own with usury, how could
we account to the Lord, if we did not have the sum received,
nor were able to produce it.</p>

<p>O my dear brethren, let it become manifest who dwells in you
(Rom. 8:9); let love and your faith become manifest before all
men, and love one another, with 'a pure heart as members of one
body, of which Christ is the Head. And forgive one another, if
any one have a complaint against any; and even as God; in
Christ forgave you, so also do you. -Col: 3:13. Bear ye one
another's burdens, and so fulfill the law of Christ. Gal. 6:2.
And be not pleased with yourselves. Let each esteem other
better than themselves. Phil. 2:3. Diligently beware of
frivolity. And all young brethren and sisters I would
faithfully warn against wanton scoffing and mocking; spiteful
words and foolish babblings, which are not becoming.</p>

<p>And you older ones, lay this to heart, too, and let neither
m your words nor in your works any hypocrisy be found, for I
have perceived that some are very subtle or cunning of speech,
which I cannot praise, nor have I praised it; for if we are to
be simple, we certainly must lay aside craftiness, for, mark,
whatsoever is more than yea and nay cometh of. evil. Matt.
5:37. However, hereby is not meant that we should not say more
than yea and nay, but that we should end and confirm our words,
without anger or dissimulation simply with yea and nay, and
thus use moderation, and cut off all excess; that is, we should
deal with the simple truth. If one, when asked in regard to
something, does not reply with reference to this, but to
something else, and then says that he did not err, since what
he replied was true, such action is not noble, my brethren. It
also happens, now and then that when one has erred in some
matter and is then reprimanded for it; lie gives a reason, but
which, in fact, is not the reason, doing this to cover himself,
and to prevent the error from coming to the light. This is the
nature and disposition of the old Adam (which ought justly not
to obtain with Christians regenerated by the word of truth),
that he would always cover his nakedness with fig leaves; for
when he was ad-</p>

</div><div id="697"> 

<p>dressed by the Lord on account of his transgression, a
reason immediately presented itself by which he thought to
cover himself; namely,"the woman whom thou gavest me," he
said,"gave it me, and I did eat." Gen. 3:12. And, likewise,
when Eve was addressed, she laid it to the serpent. But if they
had wanted to plainly tell the fundamental cause of their
transgression, it would have been"Our curiosity and pride
brought us to it, namely we desired to have our eyes opened; to
be wise, to know good and evil, to be like God; in short, we
saw that the tree was good for food, pleasant to the eyes, and
a tree to be desired to make one wise, hence we allowed
ourselves to be persuaded, and did eat of it." Had they thus
answered the Lord, it would have been a true answer. The
answerwhich they gave was true; but it was not yet the true
kernel or fundamental cause of their fall and transgression.
But in order that you may thoroughly comprehend the true sense
and meaning of what we have written here, we will present to
you a single comparison by way of example. Suppose a believing
husband had an unbelieving wife, who should give birth to a
living child; and the husband would fain retain the friendship
of his neighbors and the world, and remain in possession of his
house and home, and yet wished also to be at peace with Christ
and His people (though. this, according to the Word of God, is
impossible, for no one;. as Christ says, can serve two contrary
masters at the same time). Hence he should say to his wife that
he did not intend to consent that the abomination of
antichrist, (you understand what I mean), should be applied to
the child. And though. he could change it, and persuade his
wife to obey im in the matter, yet he should allow it to be
done without himself taking any notice of it, thinking with
himself, "If she does it, I can notwithstanding remain at ease,
and in the enjoyment of my possessions: and shall not be
persecuted by the world, and if the brethren take me to task
for it, I can say that it was done without my consent by my
wife." See, my brethren, this would certainly not be a true,
simple answer, as you may judge for yourselves. Many other like
Oxamples and comparisons might be adduced; however, for the
sake of brevity 1 will forbear for the present. I desire that
you will yourselves meditate more deeply on this, than I have
shown you here; and be warned hereby to beware of such
dissimulation. For though a man cover himself before his
fellows (with such fig leaves, made by him into an apron), so
that his nakedness is not seen, yet God beholds his reins and
can search the heart, and He knows the thoughts and intents of
all men, and will also judge all works and purposes; also, all
secrets and hidden things, whether they do good or evil.
Therefore give diligence that in all your words and works, in
all your walk and conversation, you practice simple sincerity,
as becomes the children of God, and our calling demands. And if
any among you be overtaken by a fall, let him confess it simply
and truly, without dissimulation, just as it is, and let him not be ashamed to confess it,
since he was not ashamed to commit it; else it might be to his
sorrow. He that covereth his sins, it is written, shall not
prosper, but whoso confesseth and forsaketh them shall have
mercy. Prov. 28:13. T have told you before, and tell you again,
that before men one can sometimes justify himself with a fair
pretense, and cover himself with an apron of fig leaves; but
whether it shall stand the test when brought to the touchstone,
each may see for himself.</p>

<p>This ought to be well considered by those whose daily
business is that of trading, whom I would rather see engaged in
some honest kind of labor, than in trafficking, and this not
without reason. For as a nail sticketh fast between the
joinings of the stones, so doth sin stick close between buying
and selling, as Sirach says. Unless you hold yourself
diligently in the fear of God, your house shall soon be
overthrown. Sir. 27:2, 3. And in whatever I may in all these
things have erred, or grieved any one, I am sorry for it from
the bottom of my heart. But thanks be to God in heaven, who has
given me poor weak servant an unwounded or uncondemned
conscience (of which I acknowledge myself unworthy); for I
never had greater joy on earth as long as I can remember, than
I now have. May the Lord preserve me from speaking boastingly;
however, I have no doubt that He, whose unworthy servant I have
been in my weakness, will not suffer me to be confounded. I
have heartily desired, and so still heartily desire it, if I,
of God, should be counted worthy, I might be led through the
whole city of Cologne, and scourged with rods, and then cast
back in prison. Not that I seek any merit by it, Oh no, but
that what the Lord has put into me might become known and
manifest before all men, to His praise, and not to mine.
However, the will of the Lord be done; nor do I wish anything
else, the Lord knows, cost what it may. And I desire from the
bottom of my heart, yea, command in the name of our Lord Jesus
Christ, that you keep that which God has entrusted to you, for
it is the truth; this I testify before God and man. No matter
who shall approach you, do not listen to them. Let the
Hutterites* slander as much as they please. God keep me from
them, namely from the doings of their teachers. I am free in my
heart on their account, in regard- to all the dealings I have
had with them. And if they say that I dared not renounce
because of the people (as I understand that they have said
concerning our brother Thomas), I reply,"No;" for I know no man
on this earth, so dear to me that without the faith I would lay
down my life for him. But thanks to the Lord I have found this
in me, and do still find it strongly in me, that I will much
rather lay down my life for my brethren, than bring into
trouble or reveal any one, in order thus to save my life; this
I say, God knows, from faith, and not in</p>

<p>* Or Moravians.</p>

</div><div id="698"> 

<p>a spirit of boasting. But as many among them as please God,
whether I have seen them or not, these, as also others, I do
not judge, for they stand to the Lord. Rom. 14:4.</p>

<p>I likewise tell you to leave the others be where they are
except they sincerely come back in the matter of marriage, and
the other articles, and humble themselves before God, and also
use a little more restraint in their lives than they now do;
for pomp and pride stink before the Lord. Therefore they are
also not acceptable or pleasing in my eyes. Hence put them off,
for they are an abomination unto God; and let not pride and
presumption have dominion either in your words or actions; for
in pride has originated all destruction, as Tobit teaches his
son. Hence humble yourselves from the heart under the mighty
hand of God; for He giveth grace to the humble, but resisteth
the proud. I Peter 5:5. As regards how it is with me, I inform
you that I have entirely committed myself into the hand of the
Lord. What His will is, is mine also. I know of nothing better
to choose for .myself, than that I might be an acceptable
offering to Him, and. might offer up my sacrifice without the
gate, in the daytime (Heb. 13:12); Oh, how greatly would I
thank Him. <i>Oh</i> my dear fellow members, out of what great
sorrow the Lord has delivered me, which I carried in my heart
day and night, on account of the Nederland journey: but Oh,
what a faithful God! how well He knows how to deliver out of
temptation, at the right time, those <i>who</i> can trust Him
for it from the heart. I Cor. 10:13; II Peter 2:9.</p>

<p>.It often occurred to me that I should not get away-that the
Lord should order it otherwise; as my dear wife and sister in
the Lord well knows, for I often conversed with her about it,
the Lord be thanked forevermore. I took leave from all the
churches, and heartily asked every one among them to forgive me
if I had grieved them. I did the same towards them, and then
went away. Brit a far better journey was in store for me, on
which I now ,am, the Lord be praised for it, for I am in good
,hope that, through the grace of God, it will tend to my great
advantage. Oh, my brethren, my heart ,is full of joy, yea, it
is running over with it. It seems to me, for very joy, that I
see the heavens opened. Oh, that I might by writing (since I am
prevented from conversing with you), pour out my heart to you
and refresh it. My ink is almost exhausted. As it is with me,
so it is also with Joosken. and Herman, my dear fellow
prisoners and brethren. We wait for our God, and greet you all
with a holy kiss. And the salutation with mine own hand is
this, "The grace of the Lord Jesus Christ be .with all believers
in Christ unto the end. Amen." I Cor. 16:26, etc.</p>

<p>Care for my young orphan children, as also all other
orphans, as you would for myself; bring them up with reproof
and correction, to piety; teach them to read, and when the time
has come, keep them at work. Get Aelken cured, if you can; Z bequeath to him the three pieces of money, the silver
piece and the two others; also a Testament ,to each; this shall
be their inheritance from their father.</p>

<p>I likewise commend to you my wife, as long as she fears God,
as I hope that she will do unto the end, if she gets out. The
Lord own what I have told you, and what I have sought
concerning all believers,-not riches or treasures on this
earth, but the salvation of men's souls. And I desire that you
firmly keep together, with teaching, admonishing and reproving.
And follow your leaders and submit to them, for they watch over
your souls. Heb. 13:17. And you ministers, show yourselves a
pattern of good works to all believers, not in semblance only,
but in sincerity. Read how Paul admonishes Timothy and Titus;
be you also admonished by it. May the Lord give you
understanding. Amen.</p>

<p>Dear brethren, concerning our examination and hearing, I
wrote to you previously very briefly, as you know. But if I am
to write to you, one by one all the questions they put to me,
and the answers I gave them, I should require much ink, paper
and time; especially, for what was spoken during the day
between me and the count, in a friendly manner and also with
sharpness; for it is very much. Yet, if we were where the count
wishes us, we would be released. His conscience is not easy,
but accuses him. May the Lord put true repentance into his
heart, and give it a clear sight, to know the will of God, and
to discern light from darkness, and that he, in consequence
thereof, may hate and utterly forsake darkness and love the
true light, and adhere to it with his whole heart, so that he
may also, in that clay, with the true children of the light,
receive his part from the hand of the Lord. This I wish him and
all our enemies and opponents, from God (as much as possible)
from the bottom of my heart. Otherwise, it goes still well with
us in every respect, in body and soul. We hope to help fulfill
the number of the righteous, and to rest with our fathers, and
to wait for the glorious reward of all the righteous. .I greet
all the believers with a holy kiss. Greet one another with a
kiss of love. And do not forget us, nor any of the prisoners;
but persevere in strong prayer for us to God, for this is
highly necessary. For, it seems to me, it was an easy matter to
be imprisoned in the time of our brother Thomas; for the
subtlety of men increases every day. Hence, pray diligently for
us; we trust also not to forget you; the Lord be with us all.
Amen.</p>

<p>By me, MATTHIAS SERVAES,</p>

<p>Your weak brother, and unworthy minister and prisoner of
Jesus Christ, whom I serve in the Gospel in my bonds. I hope
that my dissolution is near at hand.</p>

<p>I desire of you, J. N. B., that you properly transcribe
this, and see that my wife (who is also imprisoned) gets a copy
of it. If it pleases you, it</p>

</div><div id="699"> 

<p>may also be read before the brethren; but if you do not deem
it expedient, or promotive of the glory of God, then dispense
with it, for I do not in the least seek my own glory by it, but
the praise of the Lord and the consolation and joy of
believers. My mother I greet in particular, and desire that she
serve the Lord without guile; the same I desire of my brother
John and my sisters. Written and read with many tears; and this
from the heart. You know my brethren, that I did not lightly
take up my ministry, but with many tears; in like manner I now
resign it. Then I wept for sorrow; but now I weep for heartfelt
joy. With tears I received the ministry from you (I believe,
also from God); but with many tears of great joy I surrender it
back to the Lord (if it pleases Him) and to you. May the Lord
manifoldly fill my place with faithful servants. Amen.</p>

<p>Oh, how my heart is in yours. Show a fatherly heart to all,
with all humility; and whether it go well or ill with you,
ascribe the praise to the Lord, for He causes and does
everything, and not we. And do not, under any circumstances,
forsake the people in the Nederland; reprove them sharply for
pride'; this is my desire. H. and F. and all, keep well that
which is committed to your trust, and do not forget it. Greet
T. W., my dear brother, whom I love from the heart. Concern
yourselves in a godly spirit in the affairs of the Upper
Country; prevent divisions among the people wherever you can.
This is written to all those who desire that I should write to
them, for I cannot write to each individually. I do not seek
any glory therein. The grace of God be with us all. Amen. Given
the 9th day of July, 1565.</p>

<h2>THE FIFTH LETTER WHICH MATTHIAS SERVAES WROTE FROM PRISON, TO HIS MOTHER, HIS BROTHER JOHN, HIS BROTHER-IN-LAW LEONHARD, AND HIS TWO SISTERS</h2> 

<p>Grace and peace from God the Father, and the prompting of
the Holy Ghost to all righteousness, I wish unto you all, my
beloved, through Jesus Christ. Amen.</p>

<p>Further, I inform you, dear mother, and brother John, and
Frances and Barbara, my dear sisters, that according to the
flesh it is very well with me (excepting these bonds which I
nevertheless also deem good); and according to the soul it is
still much better. Praise and thanks for it be to the eternal
God, who has ordered it so well with me, unworthy, weak
servant; for it had already been determined (as you.yourselves
partly know) that I was to leave you; but of this journey, on
which I now am, we all knew nothing. This was the journey which
I was to take. I have now proceeded on it a little way, and am
(thanks to the Lord), not yet worthy of it, though I have
hitherto traveled a very dangerous and painful way, and it has
cost me many a drop of sweat. I also well know that the
delicate children of the Lord must go rough ways, and though I have suffered, and still daily suffer much,
from robbers, evil workers, false brethren and deceitful, lying
apostles, yet I trust that I shall not look back, but go on
joyfully by the help and succor of God, till I come to the
blessed end and inherit the beautiful city. Baruch 4:26; II
Corinthians 11:26; Rev. 2:2. But He who sent a guide with
Tobias, preserved the prophet Daniel in the den of lions, and
deprived the fire of its power, so that it could not harm the
three men in the fiery furnace, the same, and no other, has
also mightily preserved me hitherto, and I feel confident that
He will also safely keep me unto the end. Amen.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear mother, and John my brother, and my two
sisters, it is my multiplied entreaty and fatherly and
brotherly exhortation, that you steadfastly walk in piety
before God; for it will avail nothing to cry, "Lord, Lord," if
we do not diligently perform what He has commanded. Therefore
put your own wisdom and your pride far from you, and beware of
sudden anger and violent passions; for they produce no good,
but pollute the mind, and defile prayer; and let each take heed
that his conscience be not sullied with deceitful, malicious,
and perverse thoughts; for they separate from God. And I desire
of you, my dear mother, who are very dear to my heart, that you
be content with humble fare, and not allow evil thoughts to
come into your heart; but thank God for everything, and
remember that at Kottenem you often did not have enough to eat.
And if you now were still there, and held all the property
still in your possession, and had to run and go day and night,
laboring and toiling, you would scarce get a living from it.
Receive this in good part, my dear mother, for it is all done
for your good, that you may keep a pure heart, free from evil
thoughts, and thus see God, and be saved. Matt. 5:8. Thus I
also desire of you all, that whatever you do, you do
voluntarily, without murmurings and disputings, that no one may
accuse you. I Cor. 10:10; Phil. 2:14, 15. I had set apart three
<i>Kcenigs Thaler,*</i> as a lesson for you brother John, for
your and my mother. If you do not already have them, I think
you will get. them yet. Keep Barbara at work, and admonish her
to fear God from the heart; and this I desire of you all, for
there is no one among you with whom I have had more trouble and
anxiety: I wish my brother-in-law the highest good from God.
Finally, I desire of you, my dear mother. that you do not
complain, or grieve too much, on account of my bonds and
imprisonment; but thank the Lord, who has kept me, that I have
not come into these bonds and imprisonment for evil doing, but
for His name's sake; hence neither I nor you need feel ashamed
of it. Pray also diligently for me, that He would henceforth
preserve me from all evil, and give me a steadfast mind, and
true patience, that I may in all temptations and afflictions
steadfastly adhere to His word unto the end. And</p>

<p>* King's Dollars.</p>

</div><div id="700"> 

<p>take, my dear mother, for an example, the manfulness of the
mother of the seven sons, of whom we read in II Macc. 7. For
said mother of the seven brothers, from perfect wisdom, stirred
up her womanly heart with manly thoughts, and said to her
sons, "I cannot tell how ye came into my womb; for I neither
gave you breath nor life, neither was it I that formed the
members of every one of you; but doubtless the Creator of the
world, who formed the generation of man, will also of His own
mercy give you breath and life again, as ye now regard not your
own selves for His law's sake." Behold, mother, what a manful
spirit this was; hence be you also manful now, and surrender me
willingly to the Lord, from whom you received me; for we are
also sure that we shall receive again in that day, and keep
forever, the life which we now gladly despise and lose for the
name of Christ. This, my affectionate beloved mother, I wanted
to present to you very briefly, so that you might be valiant
and of good cheer while I am in bonds, and might also not love
your life, but willingly resign it for the name of Christ, if
it should come to that. And as the Lord has called you almost
at the eleventh hour, and sent you into His vineyard, give all
the diligence you possibly can, faithfully to do the work of
the Lord for this one hour; and remember the .words of the
prophet where he says, "Cursed be the servant that doeth the
work of his Lord slothfully." Jer. 48:10. Hence be faithful,
and wait patiently for the evening, and you will also receive
the penny, yea, the beautiful crown, and the glorious kingdom,
from the hand of the Lord, together with all the children of
God. But may this God, who only is wise, make us prepared unto
every good work, to do His will, and grant that our works be
acceptable before Him, through Jesus Christ, to whom be honor
and might forever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>I commend you all to God; we must part here; entreat God for
me, as I for you. I salute all believers.</p>

<h2>THE SIXTH LETTER WHICH MATTHIAS SERVAES OF KOTTENEM WROTE FROM PRISON, TO HIS DEAR WIFE AND SISTER IN THE LORD, WHO WAS ALSO IMPRISONED</h2> 

<p>Grace, peace, and joy in the heart, through Christ, be with
you my dearly beloved wife, whom I love from the heart, yea, as
my own soul and also with all the prisoners that are in Christ
Jesus. Amen.</p>

<p>Further, my dear sister in the Lord, I reply to your first
remark, by which you indicate that it grieves you that I am
alone. But, my dear child. I am not alone, but have the comfort
of all believers (John 14:26) with me. I do not know whether I
ever had greater joy on earth; for I am certain and truly
assured that the Lord will not lay on me more than I can bear;
for I do not wish to be freed from suffering (if it be the will
of the Lord that I suf fer); but may His holy will be done. Hence, my dear child,
dismiss this grief from your mind, this I desire. In the second
place, you lament your disobedience, that you have not been
much more obedient to me; thus I also deplore it from the heart
before my God, that I have not been more diligent than I have
hitherto been; hence we have no cause for boasting, but much
rather for lamenting, for I say with Solomon, "Who can say, I
have made my heart clean, I am pure from my sin?" Prov. 20:9.
And with this agree also the words of Esdras, where he
says, "Let not the sinner say that he hath not sinned: for God
shall burn coals of fire upon his head, which saith before the
Lord God and his glory, I have not sinned. II Esd. 16:53. On
this wise, also the apostle John speaks in his first epistle
(1:8), saying, "If we say that we have no sin, we deceive
ourselves, and the truth is not in us." Therefore, dear wife,
we may well lament, and pray with David, "O Lord, enter not into
judgment with thy servant, but according to thy loving kindness
have mercy upon us, and according to the multitude of thy
mercies blot out our transgressions." Ps. 143:2; 51:1. Yea,
even though we have done all that we are in duty bound to do,
it behooves us nevertheless to say, "We are unprofitable
servants: we have done that which was our duty to do." Luke
17:10. Hence we are not to place ourselves by the side of them
that would be saved and justified by their works; but much
rather by the side of those of whom the Scripture says, "Blessed
are they whose iniquities are forgiven, and whose sins are
covered. Blessed is the man to whom the Lord will not impute
sin." Rom. 4:7, 8. Perhaps our appointed time upon earth will
soon be spent, and the Lord wants to purify us before the end
comes; or perhaps we, by reason of weakness, could not have
truly known our transgression, except in this manner, in order
that it may be truly repented of before we are taken hence. For
one can work no truer repentance than thus in the chastisement
of bonds. Of this we have a clear example in Manasseh, the King
of Judah, who cared not how much the Lord warned him through
the prophets; yea, all was of no avail, until he was carried to
Babylon into captivity by his enemies. There he first learned
to know his sins, and repented. II Chron. 33. The Lord
certainly loves us, that He has called us to this place; do not
doubt it, my dear wife. Heb. 12:6. Hence let us fully trust the
Lord, and cast all doubt from us, lest we fall into greater
sins. But if we have sinned, let us do it no more, lest
something worse happen to us (John 5:14); and this is also the
best repentance, namely to do it no more.</p>

<p>O my dear wife, be of good cheer, and cast.your sorrow or
care upon the Lord, for He will care for us; despair not.
Remember the kind words of the Lord, where He says, "Come unto
me, all ye that labor and are heavy laden, and I will give you
rest." Matt. 11:28. For the Lord will remember us, and not
forget us. Yea, He will forget us much less,</p>

</div><div id="701"> 

<p>than a mother will forget her child which she has borne nine
months. And though a mother .forget her child, yet will He not
forget us, but will preserve us as the apple of His eye. Isa.
49:15; Zech. 2:8. But that the Lord permitted our imprisonment,
is all for our best, that through such chastisement we may
learn true obedience; for thus we can be truly cleansed, and
also truly tried, whether we love aught more than our Lord
Jesus Christ. It is comparatively easy to forsake husband,
wife, children, father, mother, sisters, brothers, houses, or
fields, for the name of Christ; but when it comes to a man's
own person, and his life is concerned, then it is that he is
truly tried and refined, for a man will give skin for skin,
yea, all that he has, for his life, as is written in job. But
Christ says that one must hate and forsake all this, and his
own life also, and take up the cross, and follow Him. And
whosoever does not do this, cannot, He says, be His disciple.
Luke 14:26, 27. But we can hate or renounce ourselves in no
fitter way than by fully surrendering ourselves into the hand
of the Lord, so that we may say in truth, "Lord, Thy holy will
be done, that is: Lord, what Thou wilt, that be done." Behold,
my dear wife, this is true renunciation.</p>

<p>I further desire of you and all prisoners, that each, as
much as he finds himself accused in his conscience, humble
himself therefore the more before his God; for the time of
grace, and the day of salvation, yea, the acceptable time, is
still at hand. Let us not cease knocking, until He have mercy
on us and open the door far us, and give us, because of our
importunity the things we need. For He is a gracious God; He
forgives very willingly, and soon repents of the evil; and from
those who turn to Him from the heart He will not turn away His
face; but they that depart from Him, their names shall be
written in the earth. Jonah 4:2; II Chron. 30:9; Jer. 17:13.
Therefore, the man that asks Him for grace ought to examine
himself as to whether he does it from the heart; for though man
lament with the mouth, the Lord knows the heart; hence let
everyone be in earnest, for if this be not the case, he cannot
succeed. Judith 8. Now let it become manifest whether you truly
love God, yea, whether you love Him above all.</p>

<p>Oh, what a great word it is which Peter utters, "That our
faith' might be found much more precious than perishable gold,
which is tried,by fire." Show now the true virtue of faith, and
pay what you promised and vowed to the Lord, and allow not
yourself to be turned aside either to the right or to the left,
but remain in the middle of the road, and you will enter in.
For he that perseveres in the way of the Lord unto the end, he,
and no other, shall be saved; to this end, may the gracious God
help us all, through Jesus Christ. Amen.</p>

<p>I have to write in great fear. O my dear wife, and you
altogether, I commend you into the hand of the faithful God;
may He keep you and me stead fast unto the end. Amen. The grace of our Lord Jesus Christ
be with you. Amen.</p>

<p>Receive one another with a holy kiss of love, and remember
.me from the heart, which I trust to do with regard to you. And
if we may see one another no more on this earth, may the Lord
grant us grace and strength, so to acquit ourselves here that
we may see one another face to face hereafter, in the eternal
joy, with all the children of God. Amen.</p>

<p>O my dear Aeltgen, do not forget what I have often
admonished you, namely, that you should firmly keep God before
your eyes, and walk uprightly before Him. I mean all of.you
with this letter. O Lord, uphold us. Amen.</p>

<p>Now be of good cheer, my dear wife and sister in the Lord,
and lay aside all grief; for what man is there (as said above)
that can say: I have not sinned, my heart is clean, I am pure
from sin, I also might have walked more diligently before you
than I have done; however, may God take from us all that is
displeasing to Him in us. Amen. Be watchful, my dear sister in
the Lord; for the devil seeks to disquiet men.</p>

<p>I have written this in Cunebert's tower, but now we are in
the count's house, namely, I Matthias and Herman, and are in
daily expectation of being offered up, with which we are
heartily satisfied, if God count us worthy. Preserve this
letter very carefully from the eyes of those who sharply
examine us, lest others get into trouble thereby. The peace of
God be with us all. Amen.</p>

<h2>THE SEVENTH LETTER OF MATTHIAS SERVAES, WRITTEN FROM PRISON TO J. N. AND HIS BRETHREN</h2> 

<p>Grace and peace be with all believers in Christ Jesus.
Amen:</p>

<p>Know further, dear brethren and sisters, that it is still
very well with us, namely, with me and Herman; for our hearts
are full of joy, yea, running over with it. Time seems as short
to us as it ever did. In the night we praise our God with one
accord. We are now alone. Eberhard, the bishop's chaplain,
visited me again, on the Saturday after St. James' Day, and
conversed very affably with me about infant baptism and the
resurrection of the dead. And the count entreated me,
saying, "Dear Matthias, tell us your fundamental views
concerning these articles, for I told you that your people in
the other tower confessed that the dead bodies will not rise;
but from you I have received no clear answer, and as you have
taught them, they must have it from you." I replied, "It is
true, Sir Count, you had such a conversation with me the last
time, and I then answered to you, as also now, namely, that I
call all the prisoners to witness, that I presented no further
views in my doctrine (which is not mine, but Christ's), than
that the time will came when all the dead will rise from their
graves, the righteous</p>

</div><div id="702"> 

<p>unto life, the wicked unto eternal death, and that we must
all appear before the judgment seat of Christ, that everyone
may receive in his body, according to that he hath done,
whether it be good or bad. But that this same flesh and blood
which we now have should inherit the kingdom of God, this I did
not teach, but the contrary, namely: 'That flesh and blood
cannot inherit the kingdom of God; neither doth corruption
inherit incorruption.'" I Cor. 15:50.</p>

<p>Then Eberhard, the chaplain, said that he too did not
believe that this flesh and blood should inherit the kingdom of
God. I also said, "We shall be changed." Now, he that would know
how this will come to pass, and how the dead will rise, and
with what bodies they will come, to him Paul says, "Thou fool, that which thou sowest is not quickened, except
it die: and that which thou sowest, thou sowest not that body
that shall be, but bare grain, it may chance of wheat, or of
some other grain: but God giveth him a body as it hath pleased
him." (I Cor. 15:35). This, I said, is my ground, Oh, that I
might become worthy to rise .with the righteous, this is my
care; as to how the Lord will give me a body, this I leave to
Him, and am well satisfied therewith. More than this I shall
confess to neither you nor any other man. Herein, he said, we
do not differ much.</p>

<p>I then further said, "The cry now raised against us is: This
one has confessed this, and that one, that, and another one
something else. My good friend, go among the people, and
interrogate each individual separately concerning all the
articles; what do you think, would they answer or confess to
you anything certain? Certainly nothing at all, or at least but
very little.""It is true," he replied. We had much additional
conversation yet, concerning what ancient writers say on infant
baptism. I rejected them all, and left them to God; but he
begged me to consider it. I put the same request to him, and
said: ''I feel assured and confirmed in my heart, that it is
the pure truth, and I want to live and die for it." I also told
them something in regard to their unclean and defective
church-the brothel, gambling-house, fencing-school, and their
daily life, which they lead in an utterly heathen manner; and
also concerning the injustice and violence they, by way of
torture, had inflicted upon us, only because we would not be
traitors; all this I told him to consider, if he were a
shepherd of the sheep. He replied that he was heartily sorry
for it, and the count's. countenance fell, as it seemed. to me.
They arose, and Eberhard gave me his hand, and in a very
friendly manner commended me to the Lord.</p>

<p>Thus, it is: still very well with us, the Lord be thanked.
Amen. Remember as day and night in your prayers, which we also
intend to do for you. And I wish that all prisoners might be
admonished and warned to decline all conversation: they are
quite at liberty to refuse it. 0 brethren, how sub tilly and craftily they spread their nets, to chase my soul
into them, but they shall not capture it, this I confidently
hope; for in vain the net is spread in th46 sight of any bird.
Prov. 1:17.</p>

<p>Hence, I desire of all prisoners, that they guard their
lips, and bridle their tongues. While the wicked is before you,
as David says (Ps. 39:1), snake not haste to speak, lest you
deceive your heart; and wait with patience until Christ speaks
in you, or His Spirit, according to His promise, through you.
Matt. 10:20. And though you reply not to every question, you
need not be ashamed of it, for He who was the wisdom of God,
namely, Christ, was also not ashamed of it, as the scriptures
of the Old and the New Testament sufficiently testify. And if
you are asked concerning others who are still at large or in
prison, as to whether they are of our number or not, or whether
they are baptized or not, you may reply, "I am not imprisoned
here for another, but for myself; hence, I may speak for
myself, and not for another." And if they then threaten you
with the torture or long imprisonment, let them threaten, let
them torture; only do you firmly trust in the Lord, and they
shall not be able to do more than God, who has the king's heart
in His power, will permit. Prov. 21:1. If it then be the will
of the Lord, that you suffer, remember that you often
said, "Lord, Thy will be done." And, surely, if you firmly trust
the Lord, the very hairs of your head are all numbered, and not
one of them will fall from it without the Father's will. Matt.
6:10; 10:30; Luke 12:7.</p>

<p>Therefore, fear not their threats in the least, and be not
terrified; but submit to the Lord with patience and
longsuffering in all that befalls you on account of the truth.
Trust God; He will not forsake you even unto death. Amen.</p>

<p>But if I could see, my dear fellow members, that it might
promote the .glory of God, and your, and their salvation, if
you should answer all their questions, -I would not only
admonish you to wait until they ask you, but I would heartily
urge you by entreaty and admonition, to tell and confess it to
them of your accord, before they ask you. But how they herein
seek the glory of God, and the welfare and salvation of your,
yea, of their own, souls, this I will leave to the
consideration and impartial judgment of every God-fearing lover
of the truth.</p>

<p>Therefore guard your lips, my beloved, as said above. I have
composed a hymn, doing it not from wantonness; hence I wish
that it be sung not to my honor, but to the praise of God.</p>

<p>Dear brethren, faithfully remember me in your prayers. I
greet you all with the peace of our Lord Jesus Christ; he that
loves Him not is Anathema, Maran-atha. The grace of our Lord
Jesus Christ, and the love 'of God, and the communion of the
Holy Ghost, be with its all. Amen.</p>

</div><div id="703"> 

<h2>THE EIGHTH LETTER OF MATTHIAS SERVAES, WRIT TEN FROM PRISON TO AELTGEN, HIS WIFE</h2> 

<p>The grace of God be and abide with you and all fellow
believers in Christ that are with you and elsewhere; together
with true peace, friendly love, constant patience, and
steadfast perseverance, to bear unto the end all that is laid
upon us of that which is still left of the afflictions of
Christ. Amen.</p>

<p>Further, my dear wife, whom I from the very beginning of our
coming together (of this I trust the Lord is my witness), have
loved more according to salvation than according to the flesh,
and have cared for your soul as for my own, and admonished you
to that which we have now come. The Lord be praised for it
forever, For, my dear sister in the Lord, you well know the
grief I felt on account of the removal, and though some may
perhaps have thought that I took delight in it, it is not so at
all; for since that time I have often wished that, if it be for
my salvation, I might through some means be relieved from it,
whether it be through imprisonment or by death. But since it
pleases the Lord, that we are here on earth first, through
suffering, to be witnesses of His Word and name; as you, in a
measure, have wished more than once, that I might through
suffering be taken home to God, and I have desired that you
might be apprehended with me, as has now happened; therefore
let us also be patient, and thank the Lord, that He has heard
us, and fulfilled our prayer, and let us not pray otherwise now
than we have hitherto prayed namely, thus, "Lord, Thy will be
done." Surrender me willingly into the hand of the Lord, whom I
have served; and be not troubled on my account. But if you
should perhaps think that we* may meet with much suffering yet
(which, however, is in the hand of the Lord), think also that
if there is much suffering prepared for us, there is also much
more consolation in store for us, for as the sufferings of
Christ abound in us, so our consolation also aboundeth by
Christ. II Corinthians 1:5. I have not time to write more,
except this, "Persevere steadfastly till you are taken hence. Then, and
not before, the crown of life is prepared." This is also
written to you, my dear sister Anna, and all that are with you.
The salutation with mine own hand. The grace of our Lord Jesus
Christ be with you all. Amen.</p>

<p>Greet one another with a holy kiss. Our brethren salute you
all. Remember us, and be of good cheer for this is the first
inheritance promised us here, which we must also possess, if we
are to gain the eternal, where all tears that now flow from our
eyes will be wiped away, and all sorrow be turned into
everlasting joy; for our affliction, which is but temporal and
light, compared with that which is eternal, worketh for us a
far more exceeding and eternal weight of glory, who look not at
the things</p>

<p>* The construction of this clause in the original seems to
indicate, with great probability, a typographical error,
consisting in the substitution, in the pronoun, of an"m" for
a"w", and that, accordingly, it ought to read"I," instead
of, "we."</p>

<p>which are seen but at the things that are not seen. II
Corinthians 4:17, 18. Hence turn your eyes from all that is
visible. Herewith I commend you all to the grace of God.
Amen.</p>

<h2>THE NINTH LETTER OF MATTHIAS SERVAES, WRIT TEN FROM PRISON TO F. V. H.</h2> 

<p>The saving grace of God be multiplied unto you and all the
pious, through Jesus Christ; with the power of the Holy Ghost.
Amen.</p>

<p>O. F., my greatly beloved friend* in the Lord, I cannot out
of love to you forbear to inform you how gladly I would fulfill
your request, but I lack many things, as for instance, paper
and ink, and besides am watched as closely as gold, that I
might neither receive nor send off any letters. Hence accept
this brief letter in good part, for I have written it for your
good. Therefore the heartfelt admonition and request I now
address to you is, that you sincerely take heed to your life,
and order it so that it is conformable to the Word of God, yea,
to the example of Jesus Christ, and consider it diligently, as
you said in conversation with me. Love God above all, and do
not forsake the assembly (Hebrews 10:25) , as hitherto; for if
you still love aught more than Him, you are not worthy of Him.
Take good heed, my friend in the Lord; for a lip faith is of no
avail, as you well know yourself; but it must be a living
faith, yea, that works by love; if we are to stand here, and
hereafter before God. May God Schadai (Ex. 3:14), work such a
faith in you, and in all who heartily desire it. Amen. As
regards how it is with me, I cannot write enough, for the Lord
grants me great joy in my heart, so that I would desire of God,
if it were His will, that I might- be led bound through
Cologne, and beaten with rods from street to street, so that
His name might become manifest; and that my body might be
refined on the rack, only to the praise of God, and not to
mine; which has also partly occurred. The Lord be praised,
Amen; the Lord who sealed my lips, and endued me with strength,
which He still daily increases; and who will sustain me unto
the end. Amen.</p>

<p>Herewith I commend you to God. Remember us as we will you.
Greet them that are with you, to whom my salutation in the Lord
is acceptable. By me, MATTHIAS SERVAES, of Kottenem.</p>

<h2>THE TENTH LETTER OF MATTHIAS SERVAES, WHICH HE WROTE FROM PRISON TO MAR. WEST</h2> 

<p>Grace and peace be multiplied unto you and all believers,
from God the Father, through Jesus Christ; with the power of
the Holy Ghost. Amen.</p>

<p>O my well beloved sister in the Lord, M. W., out of great
love, which we have mutually felt through the knowledge of God,
since we have known each other, I cannot forbear to tell you
that</p>

<p>* The word used in the original denotes a female
friend.-Trans.</p>

</div><div id="704"> 

<p>I often think of you, and, likewise, of all the pious; for
they lie at my heart day and night. I have been informed that
you think of me with much sorrow, and that you wished, if it
could be, that the Lord had ordered it otherwise, for which I
do not pray, nor can I wish it, since I know not how He could
have ordered it better for me; for great sorrow was resting
upon me, as you also well know, and the good God has thus
delivered and relieved me from this load: and not only this,
but I am also free from all anxiety. Not that I am weary of
laboring; Oh, no, for, if I could have been profitable to the
Lord, how gladly I would have served Him, and would still
gladly serve Him; but I deem it better thus, for we must go
hence at some time. And I trust that the Lord will fill my
place with faithful servants who may be more fully endowed of
Him than I am. For the Lord knows with what anxiety, fear and
solicitude I have served you, and esteemed myself little and
unworthy before you and God, yea, so much so that I did hardly
dare lift up my eyes in meeting. But by the grace of God I have
been what I have been; and His grace, which was bestowed upon
me was not wholly in vain among you. I Con 15:10. I also took
up my ministry with many tears, as you know; but now, thanks to
the Lord, it is all joy, indeed I cannot express all the
joy.</p>

<p>O my dear sister, how sweet is the yoke of the Lord, how
light is His burden upon my neck! By His help I will hold still
to my God, may it cost what it will. But I desire that you and
all believers entreat the Lord for us, which we also trust to
do for you. I sincerely pray that His will be done. O my dear
sister, walk steadfastly and quietly in piety, that you may be
able to stand. Grace be with you all who love our Lord Jesus
Christ in sincerity. Amen. Eph. 6:24.</p>

<p class="c5">By me, MATTHIAS SERVAES,</p>

<p class="c5">Your brother in the Lord.</p><br />

<h1>FORTY-TWO PERSONS, NAMELY, THIRTY-FOUR MEN AND EIGHT WOMEN, PUT TO DEATH FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, IN THE COUNTRY OF BERNE, PRIOR TO AND UNTIL THE YEAR A. D. 1556</h1>

<p>As we were very desirous to know the present condition of
our fellow believers in Alsace, as also, what transpired among
them prior to this, with regard to the persecutions suffered,
we received, through the instrumentality of a good friend of
ours, H. Vlaming, at present residing at Amsterdam, an extract
from a certain document which the elders and teachers in Alsace
drew up concerning this matter, and sent hither. Translated
from the Alsatian vernacular, the extract reads as follows</p>

<p>As regards the brethren that were executed for the faith, in
the country of Berne, there were executed from the year 1528
until the year 1566, fortytwo persons, among whom were eight
women. We have in our possession a brief abstract of their names, and
surnames, as also, in what year and on what day each of them
was executed, etc.</p>

<p>Thus far the extract of said letter, signed, as a whole,
with the names and surnames of the elders and teachers in
Alsace, which we would insert here, did we not fear that it
might even at the present day tend to augment persecution
against them, of which they are not entirely free, as shall be
shown in the proper place.</p>

<h2>JOHN GEORGE, A. D. 1566</h2> 

<p>In the year 1566 brother John George, a Count from Italy,
having lived in Germany for several years, as a refugee, who
sojourned with the church, and conducted himself as a very
humble and excellent Christian, went from Grossenstein back to
Italy, where he had left his wife; but there he was denounced
and betrayed, so that men came from Venice, and apprehended
him. When they were on the water, on their way to Venice, they
cast him into the sea, and drowned him, dispatching him thus in
order that it might be done in quietness, lest much trouble
should arise on his account, if they should bring him to
Venice, since he was of so noble a race. Thus he had to lose
his temporal life for the faith. Through faith he forsook and
abandoned all nobility of this world, choosing rather to suffer
reproach with the people of God, than to enjoy temporal honor
and distinction among his own people; and esteeming reproach
for the name of Christ great riches, far above the treasures of
Egypt or the nobility of this world; for he had respect to the
future, and the eternal reward, which will be great in heaven,
and will not be withheld from him as a witness, follower and
valiant soldier of Christ. Heb. 11:24, 26.</p>

<h2>JOHN MANG, IN THE YEAR 1567</h2> 

<p>In the year 1567 John Mang, a hatter by trade, was
imprisoned at Senthoffen,* in Suabia, for the faith and the
divine truth. In his imprisonment he suffered great cold, so
that he could not get his feet warm at night. Besides this, he
had to assist the ungodly in many an assault and conflict.
Finally, he fell asleep in the Lord, in prison, having kept his
faith, and patiently persevered therein unto the end; hence he
will also inherit the glorious crown of life, with all the
elect of God.</p>

<h2>NICHOLAS GEYER, A. D. 1567</h2> 

<p>In the same year also Bro. Nicholas Geyer, a miller, and
deacon, was apprehended for the faith, at Innspruck, in the
earldom of Tyrol. There the Jesuits and others assailed him in
many and various ways, and, in the examination, dealt with him
in a cruel and satanical manner; but he did not suffer himself
to be moved from the faith, but steadfastly persevered as a
Christian hero, and having evinced</p>

<p>* Probably, Sonthofen (in Bavaria).</p>

</div><div id="705"> 

<p>great constancy, he was condemned to death by the children
of Caiaphas and Pilate. The priests, like the daughter of
Herodias, were determined to have his head, which they also
obtained, for he was executed with the sword, and then burnt,
thus valiantly gaining the victory in Christ, in the noble
fight of faith, as a true lover of God, whom no tribulation,
torture or vexation could cause to despair. N o water could
quench his love, no sword separate it, no fire consume it; but
it was to him a way of God to eternal life, for through love to
God, we, by His grace, will enter into paradise, if we do not
suffer ourselves to be led astray from love.</p>

<h2>KAREL HALLING, A. D. 1567</h2> 

<p>Karel Halling, a native of Steenwerck, who had fled from,
there to Armentiers, for the testimony of the Lord, was
apprehended at the latter place, and, as he was determined
steadfastly to adhere to the knowledge of the truth and faith
he had confessed, the lords sentenced him to death, and he was
thus burned alive for the name of God.</p>

<h2>ADRIAN DU RIEU, A. D. 1567</h2> 

<p>Adrian du Rieu, called Adrian Olieux, a native of Halewijn,
and minister of the Word of God, and of his church at
Armentiers, was apprehended at the latter place, for the truth,
and after boldly confessing his faith, from which no torture
could cause him to apostatize, but in which he constantly
firmly persevered, was sentenced to death, and burnt
alive.</p><br />

<h1>CHRISTIAN LANGEDUL, CORNELIS CLAESS, MATTHEUS DE VICK, AND HANS SYMONS, IN THE YEAR A. D. 1567</h1> 

<p>In the year of our Lord 1567, one Sunday morning, being the
10th of August, Christian Langedul went out to take a letter to
his brother R. L., and then proceeded to a .place called the
Schelleken, whither he had been summoned to help mediate a
difference between two persons. I Cor. 6:5.</p>

<p>This meeting having been spied out, a captain named Lamotte
(who was at that time in Antwerp) came there, under the
pretense of seeking some of his soldiers, and seeing the
assembly, he had his armed soldiers (who were waiting for it)
occupy the house, and immediately dispatched his servant boy
for the Margrave. In the meantime Christian spoke with the
captain, in French, to show him why they had come together,
during which some of the assembled company escaped through a
back door.</p>

<p>When the Margrave arrived on horseback, and entered the
house with his people, he took the rest prisoners, and marched
them off to prison, where they spent the time in great
tribulation and patience until the following day, when they
were examined in regard to their faith, which four of them,
namely, the aforesaid Christian Langedul, Cornelis Claess, 
Mattheus de Vick, and Hans Symons, boldly confessed. They
were then so cruelly tortured and so lamentably treated that
they did not fear death so much as the torture, as Christian
mentions in a letter to his wife.</p>

<p>Having spent over a month in great longing, they were
finally sentenced to death. When they received -information
that they were to die, they were bold and of good cheer;
Christian, however, lamented greatly on account of his wife and
children (previously throughout his imprisonment, but
especially in this last night), and their grief was a great
sorrow to his heart.</p>

<p>On the 13th of September, being on a Saturday, early in the
morning, these four friends were brought out and, two and two
coupled together, led to the great market place before the city
hall, where a circle of soldiers had been formed. In the midst
there was a but with four stakes, to which they were tied. Hans
Symons and Mattheus went first, and then Cornelis and
Christian. While going, Christian said to the people, "Had we
been willing to speak lies, we would have escaped this."
Mattheus said, "Citizens, that we suffer here, is for the truth,
and because we live according. to the word of God." Hans Symons
exhorted his brethren, not to fear them that kill the body, but
him who has power to cast the soul into damnation. And thus
they arrived at the place where they were to be offered up:
There the executioner's assistant first took Christian, and
placed him to a stake in the hut, from where he called to his
brethren that were still without, exhorting them to contend
valiantly for the truth, who then gave one another the last
kiss of peace. Thereupon Cornelis was also placed to a stake,
then Mattheus, and finally Hans Symons. The drums were beaten,
in order that they should not be heard to speak. The
executioner strangled them, and then set fire to the hut, and
thus these four friends came to a blessed end, according to the
words of the Lord, "He that endureth to the end shall be saved."
Matt. 10:22.</p>

<h2>LETTERS OF CHRISTIAN LANGEDUL WRITTEN DURING HIS IMPRISONMENT</h2> 

<p class="c25">The first letter of Christian Langedul, written
to his wife, Maeyhen Raedts, on the llth of August; in which he relates the joy of his
mind, as also, on the other hand, his sorrow for
his wife and children, and, finally, how he and his fellow prisoners were examined</p>

<p>I wish you grace and peace all the days of your life, from
God our heavenly Father, through Christ Jesus, in the power of
His Holy Spirit. Amen.</p>

<p>My chosen and most affectionately beloved wife, and sister
in the Lord because of the faith, as I hope by the grace of the
Lord, and that this relationship will exist forever. Matt.
12:50; Gal. 3:26.</p>

<p>Had it been possible for me, I should have written you
sooner the great grace, joy and comfort that I have enjoyed
during this brief time in prison;</p>

</div><div id="706"> 

<p>and I pray the Lord to let me enjoy said blessings unto the
end, to my salvation; however, the Lord knows the great sorrow
and tears I have had, and still have, and shall yet have,
before my departure comes, for you, the children, grandmother,
and for all the friends.</p>

<p>I have wondered, and an still unable to comprehend what a
God it is that we have; for He is the God of all comfort, who
comforts me in all my temptations; and I hope that He will also
comfort you whenever you need comfort. II Cor. 5:3.</p>

<p>My most beloved wife, be of good cheer in all your
sufferings which you have with me; for the sufferings of this
present time are not worthy to be compared to the glory which,
shall be revealed in</p>

<p>us; for we have thus accepted our pilgrimage, and always
counted these costs. Hence comfort yourself with the Word of
the Lord, as I hope you will do; and I also have confidence in
you, that you will not make me more sorrowful than I am
already; I know you to be too brave for it. Thus I hope that
the Lord will strengthen us unto the end. Always pray the Lord
for us, for we need it, for the prayer of the righteous avails
much, of whom you are one in my heart's estimation, and I hope
to see you after this life in the eternal, where we shall part
no more. And in whatever I have at any time grieved you,
forgive me for- the Lord's sake, for I gladly forgive them
everything, who have sinned against me, so that I hope that the
Lord will forgive me everything; all my sins and weaknesses. I
cannot sufficiently wonder at, nor thank the Lord enough for
what He does for me; He is too wonderfully good a God, this I
now truly realize.</p>

<p>Thus I inform you that we were all examined today before the
margrave, and of us six we four freely confessed our faith, for
it had to be; either the soul or the body had to be sacrificed;
the Lord had to be either forsaken or confessed.</p>

<p>Thus, Hans Symons, Cornelis the shoemaker, and Mattheus,
confessed as also, I unworthy one, and I hope to keep it to the
praise of the Lord, but not through my own power or merit, but
by the power and grace of God; for through weakness we are made
strong, this I must confess. Eph. 1:19; II Cor. 12:9. Hence be
of good cheer in the Lord, and do the best with the children,
of whom I dare not think, for they lie heavily on my heart.</p>

<p>When the margrave examined me today, concerning my faith he
asked me about nothing but baptism, and I held out against him
as long as I could, by saying that I knew but one baptism
according to the Gospel and Christ's own command and
injunction; but his constant question was, "Say yes or no,
whether you are satisfied with the baptism you received in your
infancy, or whether you have received another?"</p>

<p>I replied that I knew nothing to say about infant baptism;
but this did not suffice, I had to confess that I had received
another, and thus I confessed it, the Lord be praised, and I
have not regretted it yet, and I hope that I shall not regret it unto the end, for
it is the truth.</p>

<p>I must stop, since my paper will reach no further. Greet all
the friends much in the Lord, whenever you have a proper
opportunity, as also, all friends according to the flesh;
especially, greet grandmother, and comfort her as best you can,
since I have great anxiety for her sake, and for you and my
children. I often think of my sweet P., but I am glad when he
is out of my thoughts. Do the best in everything; I greet you
with a holy kiss of peace. I hope the Lord will shorten my
days, because He loves me. To L. E., I hope to write yet, when
I get time; greet her much in my name. Herewith I commend you
to the Lord. Written as above.</p>

<p>By me, your very weak husband, Christian Langedul, from
prison, in which I am for the testimony of the Lord.</p>

<p class="c25">The second letter of Christian Langedul, in
which</p>

<p class="c25">he relates how cruelly he was tortured, and
the</p>

<p class="c25">misery of his body after the torture, as</p>

<p class="c25">also, his sure hope and firm confidence in the Lord</p>

<p>Know, my beloved wife, that yesterday about three o'clock I
had written you a letter, which I now send you. I could not
send it then, for soon afterwards the margrave came here to
torture us; hence I was not able to send the letter, for then
all four of us were one after another severely tortured, so
that we have now but little inclination to write; however, we
cannot forbear, we must write to you.</p>

<p>Cornelis the shoemaker was the first; then came Hans Symons,
with whom also the captain went down into the torture chamber.
Then thought I, "We shall have a hard time of it; to satisfy
him." My turn came next-you may think how I felt. When I came
to the rack, where were the lords, the order was, "Strip
yourself, or tell where you live." I looked distressed, as may
be imagined. I then said, "Will you ask me nothing further
then?" They were silent.</p>

<p>Then thought I, "I see well enough what it means, it would
not exempt me from the torture," hence I undressed, and fully
resigned myself to the Lord: to die. Then they racked me
dreadfully, twisting off two cords, I believe, on my thighs and
shins; they stretched me out, and poured much water into my
body and my nose, and also on my heart. Then they released me,
and asked, "Will you not yet tell it?" They entreated me, and
again they spoke harshly to me; but I did not open my mouth, so
firmly had God closed it.</p>

<p>Then they said, "Go at him again, and this with a vengeance."
This they also did, and cried, "Go on, go on, stretch him
another foot." Then thought I, "You can only kill me." And thus
stretched out, with cords twisted around my head, chin, thighs,
and shins, they left me lie, and said, "Tell, tell."</p>

<p>They then talked with one another of my account which J. T.
had written, of the linen, which</p>

</div><div id="707"> 

<p>amounted to six hundred and fifty-five pounds; and that it
was so much cash and rebate. Then the margrave said, "He
understands the French well;" and I lay there in pain. Again I
was asked, "Will you not tell it?" I did not open my mouth. Then
they said, "Tell us where you live; your wife and children, at
all events, are all gone away." In short, I said not a
word."What a dreadful thing," they said. Thus the Lord kept my
lips, so that I did not open them; and they released me, when
they had long tried to make me speak.</p>

<p>Thereupon two of them, the executioner and his assistant,
bore me from the rack. Think how they dealt with us, and how we
felt, and still feel. Then they half carried, half dragged me
from the torture chamber up into the jailer's room, where was a
good fire of oak wood. There they, once or twice, gave me some
Rhenish wine to drink, which revived me in a measure. And when
I had warmed myself somewhat, they again half dragged me up
over the porter's room. There they had such commiseration for
me; they gave me wine again; they gave me spices, and of
everything you had sent me, all of which rendered me very good
service. They had wine brought and helped me to bed. But the
sheets were very coarse, and greatly hurt my shins and thighs;
however, soon afterwards the sheets and pillow you sent me
arrived, and there were also two or three pocket handkerchiefs.
They then covered me with the sheets, which came very
convenient to me, as did also the spices. Had the sheets not
come, I know not how I should have passed the night; but so I
slept tolerably well. But I am hardly able to stand yet, and
the lower part of my legs is as though they were dead from
racking; however, it is all well, as I trust by the grace of
the Lord.</p>

<p>We have such a God, so mighty, that He did not suffer me to
be tempted above that I was able to bear, and I hope He will
also not in the future, so firmly I trust in Him; for I know
assuredly that there will never be found another way or another
truth. Hence be instant, whether in season or out of season. II
Tim. 4:2.</p>

<p>I receivFd your letter, and thank'you much, that you
remember me so kindly, as you have always done. I wrote you in
my first letter, before I received yours, the right answer to
the letter you sent me. I have still much to write to you, but
am not well able to do so now, for it is too soon.</p>

<p>After me Mattheus was tortured; he named his house and the
street in which we live, and said it was in a gate; however, I
am of the opinion that there are no longer any gates in that
street. Hence move away altogether, if you have not done so
yet; for I think the lord will find his way there. Let
therefore no one who stands in any danger go into the house. He
also named R. T.'s house, and the street where F. V. St. lives.
Do herein immediately the best you can. He is very sorry for
it.</p>

<p>-Cornelis and Hans told nothing. I have much to write yet,
but the time is too short. I hope to write today yet, if it is the Lord's pleasure. I wish that
H. T. would, once come out. I greet you all most affectionatel.
It was well that J. T. went away yesterday, for the margrave
came soon after. But I cannot write you much more, for the time
until daybreak is too short.</p>

<p>Herewith I commend you to the Lord, and to the Word of His
grace. Pray the Lord diligently for us, for he that asketh
receiveth. I dare not let my thoughts dwell much on the
children and you; it is so exceedingly hard for me to part from
you and them. Satisfy all the friends as best you can, for I am
tolerably well content, only it grieves me much on their
account; however, the Lord has ordered it so.</p>

<p>By me, your weak husband, Christian Langedul, in prison at
Antwerp, the 12th. of August 1567.</p>

<p>I have not fully recovered yet from the torture, as may be
imagined; but I trust it is all well; do not grieve too much
about it. If J. T. could bring along my account book, I should
be glad; I should show him everything, or write it down for
him. Bring us something to seal letters with.</p>

<p class="c25">Another letter of Christian Langedul, in which
he shows the assurance of his mind, the
nothingness of his own self, his love to his son-in-law, 
J. T., and lastly, the fear which they had of being tortured again, and why</p>

<p>Grace, mercy, and joy in the Holy Ghost, from God our
heavenly Father, through Christ Jesus, this I wish you, my
chosen and greatly beloved wife in the Lord, and all them that
love His appearing. II Tim. 4:8.</p>

<p>Dearly beloved wife in the Lord, I hope you partly know by
this time how it is with me, by the two letters I wrote you
yesterday, which I hope you have already received. In them I
wrote to you partly concerning the state of my mind, which is
still unchanged, praise the Lord forever for His grace, which
He gives to me, poor, unprofitable and exceedingly great
sinner; for I deem myself unworthy and unfit for this glory, to
which the Lord now calls me. Of myself or by my own strength I
cannot attain it; hence I hope by His grace to adhere unto the
end to the truth and the faith once delivered to the saints;
for I am assured in my heart, and have certainly known it all
the time of my pilgrimage (which is now about twelve yearstrue,
only a short time, and imperfectly spent), that there will
never be found another. Hence I hope to adhere to it, only by
the strength and grace of the Lord, and not through my own; and
I hope by the grace of God to rejoice, by my death, all those
whom I may at any time in my life have grieved. And I hope that
all those whom I may have wronged in any way will forgive me,
since I have always been very ready to forgive, whenever any
one wronged me; I hope that all men and the Lord will also do
so towards me. I am greatly concerned for J. T., for I know his
kindness; hence I will let this suffice, and wish him, as I
have often</p>

</div><div id="708"> 

<p>done, true faith. This the Lord must give him; but he must
also pray for and heartily desire it. Oh, that I might die
another death for- him, and all the friends, that they might be
saved; how gladly I should do it! O J. T., how much you have
done for me, and, I hope, will yet do for my weak wife (your
mother), and my children, on whom I dare not let my thoughts
dwell much. .She (your mother) is a woman who fears God with
all her heart. Associate with her, for she will seek nothing
but your common salvation. I will let this suffice for the
present, else I should not have time to send this letter. I
wrote you yesterday that I hoped to write to you during the
day, but I could not do it; Mattheus and I lay in bed until two
o'clock, so greatly were we afraid, because the margrave came
here to torture Cornelis again, and we feared that we should
also be tortured a second time, of which we had a great dread,
more than of death, for it is an excruciating pain. Cornelis
was tortured and scourged to such a degree the second time,
that three men had to carry him up, and they say that he could
scarcely move a member, except his tongue. He sent word to us,
that if they come again it is his opinion it will finish him.
Thus the Margrave did not come yesterday, but we expect him
today again; may the Lord help us, for it is a horrible pain.
Yesterday I received a small basket with eatables and a
nightcap from J. T. I have lent the nightcap to Mattheus, and
should like to have another, when convenient, as also a comb,
and a Testament, a hymn book, or something else to read, that
we may delight ourselves a little with the Word of the Lord.
There is a turnkey here, by the name of Pieter, who will see
that we get it. Enclosed I send you a little memento, and W. D.
B.'s account. Yesterday evening we were told that J. T. and P.
V. D. tried hard to get to me; but it could not be, because the
margrave had said that he should come again; however, he did
not come, for he attended a great banquet at Mansfield.</p>

<p>While I am sitting here, and writing, we are informed that
the margrave will hold a penal court today; I hope it is for
us. Pray for us. I hope God will strengthen us by His power,
which surpasses everything. Oh, that we might be delivered thus
soon; but I am afraid it will not be.</p>

<p>Herewith I commend you to the Lord, and to the Word of His
grace. Always adhere to the truth, which, and nothing else, I
have confidence you will do. I heartily greet you and all the
God-fearing with the peace of the Lord; and Mattheus does the
same. Greet all the friends, especially grandmother, most
heartily, when convenient. Mattheus would say to you and all
the God-fearing, that if he has grieved you in that he did not
guard his lips better, he is sincerely sorry for it. Written in
bonds, at Antwerp, on the 13th of August, 1567, by me, your
weak husband,</p>

<p>CHRISTIAN LANGEDUL.</p>

<p>Do the best, and be of good cheer, and pray for us.</p>

<p class="c25">Another letter of Christian Langedul, in which
he</p>

<p class="c25">exhorts his brother R. L. to perseverance in
the</p>

<p class="c25">pilgrimage begun; and, being assured in his</p>

<p class="c25">mind, requests, for completion, the prayers</p>

<p class="c25">of the saints; commends his wife to him,</p>

<p class="c25">and relates how a little priest came to</p>

<p class="c25">speak with him</p>

<p>The eternal, Almighty God and Father of mercy, through His
Son, our Lord and Saviour, the same almighty, eternal,
worshipful, only wise God and merciful Father of all grace,
strengthen and stablish you unto the end with His Holy Spirit,
my dear brother and sister in the Lord, and also according to
the flesh; that you may receive the crown of life with all the
saints and elect children of God; herewith I will bid you final
farewell and greeting in this present time, with all dear
brethren and sisters in the Lord who live with you and know me.
Amen.</p>

<p>My dearly beloved brother and sister, whom I love from the
bottom of my heart, I feel prompted now at the close of my life
to write you a little for a memorial. I trust you will accept
in good part, so that it may be a perpetual memento and
admonition from this your second brother now that has been
imprisoned here in the city of Antwerp for the testimony of the
Lord, for which I hope to lay down my life by the grace of God,
and hope that you will not faint on account of this our
tribulation which we now suffer for Christ's sake, hoping that
it happens for the furtherance of the Gospel, and to the
awakening of many who possibly have long walked drowsily and
half asleep, (that they may become awakened and sober); and I
hope by the grace of the Lord that it will not tend to your
abatement, but much rather to your greater edification, and
that it will serve you as a perpetual direction in your
pilgrimage which you have yet to take through a dismal
wilderness, in which you may yet meet with many trials. Phil.
1:12; Eph. 5:14; I Thess. 5:6; I Pet. 2:11. Hence take diligent
heed, and lust not after evil things; neither be like those who
murmured; but give diligent care that you constantly press on
to the promised land, with valiant Joshua and Caleb, so that
you may take it by force. I Cor. 16:6, 10. And be content with
the Word of the Lord, and look to the promise, for He is so
faithful, and you know that the Israelites remained without for
no other reason, than because of their unbelief. Heb. 3:19.
Hence, my dear friends, believe God's work, and adhere:o it
unto death, and God will give you the victory. Though they seem
like giants in our eyes, we shall devour them as bread, and
this through our faith, by which. we overcome the devil, hell,
death and the world. Num. 13:33; I John 5:4.</p>

<p>O dearest friends, you know that all the pious overcame by
faith, as you yourself, my dear brother, know better than I can
write it to you. Hebrews 11. Take good heed, my beloved, that
you fall not in the wilderness, as so many do; for in that case
it</p>

</div><div id="709"> 

<p>were better for us not to have known the truth, yea, never
to have been born; for if we lose our birthright, wherewith
will we obtain the blessing again? for it is written that Esau
sought it with tears, but found it not. II Pet. 2:21; Heb.
12:17. Therefore faint not, but firmly persevere, it is the
true grace of God wherein you stand, as I hope you yourselves
know. I doubt not that there will never be found another way. I
Pet. 5:12.</p>

<p>O brother, were another to be found, than this anxious,
narrow and strait way, how gladly should the flesh put up with
it; but it must pass the strait. gate, and O how narrow this
is, so that flesh and blood will adhere to the posts. But, dear
and faithful brother, what great salvation the merciful Father
has provided for me, who am so utterly unworthy; what great
thanks shall I give Him for it, who has so endowed me with His
grace and provided such a salvation for me. Continue in it, my
dear brother and sister, and pray the Lord for us, that He may
preserve us in out sorest distress, and comfort us when we are
most in affliction, and in extreme need of consolation and
help, as. I hope He will do, for He is faithful that promised
it. He also will do it, and will be with us even unto death,
and not forsake us; for who was ever confounded that trusted in
Him? I hope He will not suffer us to be confounded, and that He
will finish the good work which He has begun in us, and this
through His unfathomable mercy and grace. To this end, help us
to fight, with your prayers to God in our behalf; this is my
desire and the desire of us all; in this you can now aid us the
most.</p>

<p>My dear brother, why do you grieve for me; rather take
comfort in it, for the Lord has obviously ordered it so. He
loves us, and means to bring us into rest. I feel that it is
all of the Lord, for when I for a time hear of no deliverance,
I receive great joy in my heart and refreshing from the Lord;
but as soon as something comes again, and the flesh lusts
greatly after it, joy departs, and we have great difficulty to
get it back from the Lord. Therefore I hope that you will
resign yourselves better herein, for the Lord intends to
deliver us from this body of death, and to help us out of this
anxiety. The Lord be praised forever for the love He shows me,
and that He so helps me. I hope He will keep also you in His
truth; hence be of good cheer, and comfort yourselves with His
beautiful promise, with which also we comfort ourselves
entirely.</p>

<p>Therefore, dear brother, I will herewith conclude my letter;
and I kindly ask you to accept it in good part, for it has been
written to you and your dear wife out of heartfelt brotherly
love, for a perpetual farewell and memorial. I herewith also
thank you for the' great trouble and labor you have put
yourself to for my sake and for the great expense you have on
my account. I can never repay it to you; but I hope that the
Lord will recompense it to you and yours, now and hereafter;
also as regards that other matter, which you well know. O brother, do not let it vex you that I was so situated; I
should so gladly have done it for you and yours, as God knows,
who is acquainted with every heart. If convenient for you, lend
my wife a little assistance while you are here, in the things
in which she may need your services, and comfort her in the
exceedingly great sorrow in which she now is; this I kindly
request of you.</p>

<p>Herewith I will commend you to the Lord, and to the Word of
His grace; may He strengthen and stablish you in His truth unto
the end of your lives, to His praise, and to your salvation,
and the salvation of us all.</p>

<p>This afternoon a little, lean priest visited us. I believe
he is a Jesuit, and that he sometimes preaches in Koppenken's
church. There is very little in the man: The bailiff
accompanied him. He (the priest) damned us exceedingly, which
was about all he had to say. I was with -them about two hours.
It would take too long to write all. His arguments were very
weak. It seems strange to me that the lords are not ashamed to
come with such men, who will by no means defend themselves with
the Holy Scriptures, but with the teachers of the Roman church,
with Ambrose, Jerome, and Augustine; whom [they say] we are to
believe. I then confessed that it could not be proved with the
apostolical writings that the apostles baptized infants; also,
that baptism belonged to believers, and that infants had no
faith. But he constantly asserted that the ancient teachers had
written it, and that the holy Roman church so observed it,
hence also we had to observe it. A poor argument. The others
had something at least, but he was too wretchedly deficient.
Hence it would be too tedious to write about it.</p>

<p>Herewith I commend you to God. Written at Antwerp, in
prison, by me, your weak brother in the Lord, and also
according to the flesh, Christian Langedul, imprisoned for the
testimony of the Lord and my conscience, the 10th of September,
1567.</p>

<p class="c25">Christian Langedul's leave and last adieu to
Maeyken Raedts, his wife after he was sentenced to death</p>

<p>Grace and peace from our heavenly Father, through Christ
Jesus, this I wish you, my dear and chosen wife and sister in
the Lord; and may the Comforter, the Holy Ghost comfort you in
your tribulation, as He will do according to His promise. And I
trust, my wife, that all (whether tribulation or sorrow), will
tend to salvation to the Christian, as I also trust it will
conduce to your salvation, and also to mine, although no
tribulation for the present seems to be joyous, and this
according to the words of the apostle. Heb. 12:11. However,
afterward, my beloved, it will work the peaceable fruit of
righteousness unto them that by good works seek eternal life,
as we have done according to our weakness, for thus I may well
say, and I speak it from the.heart. Nevertheless, I expect to
inherit salvation through the grace of the Lord, and am of</p>

</div><div id="710"> 

<p>good cheer herein; I will therefore thank the Lord forever
for His love. O my love, the winepress must now be trodden; and
I am quite ready for it,. the Lord be praised. Truly, He is a
God of all COmfort- who comforts us in all our tribulation. Oh,
that I could fully thank the Lord for all the comfort and
strength He grants to me, unworthy .one.</p>

<p>Therefore, my beloved, comfort yourself in the Lord, and in
His word; therein you will find such great consolation and
refreshment; and may the. Holy Ghost dwell in you with all
wisdom as, I doubt not that the Spirit of God does dwell in
you, and that He will guide you into all truth and
righteousness.</p>

<p>Your letter I received this noon; I thank you very much for
it: J. was here, but we could scarcely speak together. I felt
somewhat sorry on account of it afterwards; when I parted from
him; but the jailer drove us away, saying that. the lord was
coming, which I half thought was not so; nor was it so, for the
lord did not come. I would fain not have parted from him in
this manner, but the Lord disposes. Tell J. T. and his wife;
that I wish their salvation from all my heart, and that he and
she, and all men, might know the truth. If f promised it to him
in weakness, I hope, by the, grace of God, tomorrow to,
demonstrate it in power. J. told me that you. were writing me
another letter: O my love, you .put yourself to too much
trouble, I fear;, do rest, for it will soon be over with
me.</p>

<p>Herewith I commend you to the Lord, and to the word of His
grace. Greet all the friends most cordially with the peace of
the Lord; greet warmly R. Langedul; also your sister, and all
the friends, whenever it is convenient, and bid them all adieu.
Adieu, my dear lamb, adieu. Written on the 12th of September,
1567 by me, Christian Langedul, your husband and weak brother
in the Lord, imprisoned and sentenced to death for the
testimony of Christ, and for .our conscience. All four of us
greet you very much in the Lord. We are of good cheer and
courage in the Lord, as Kalleken, who visited us, will tell
you: Thank R. most heartily in my name for his letter; it
rejoiced my heart, the Lord be praised. Amen.</p>

<p>NOTE.--.As there has been put into our hands a letter
written by Hans Symons (who was burnt at Antwerp, A. D. 1567,
together with Christian Langedul and two others of our fellow
believers) to his wife, shortly before his death, we deem it
well herewith to insert the same; the copy of the letter
reads.as .follows</p>

<h2>COPY OF A LETTER WRITTEN BY HANS ' SYMONS TO HIS WIFE, IN HIS BONDS OR' IMPRISON MENT AT ANTWERP, IN SEPTEMBER, IN THE YEAR, A. D. 1567 '</h2> 

<p>Grace, peace and mercy from God the heavenly Father; also
steadfastness in the faith, and constant adherence to God in
all temptations and tribulations, by the power and operation of
the Holy Ghost; unto Him, blessed forever, be praise and thanks. This
I wish you, my most beloved wife and sister in the Lord, whom I
love after a godly manner, as my own flesh, yea, have loved
more than my own self, as evidenced by many favors and acts;
this is my heartfelt greeting to you, and that it may go well
with you, both in soul and body. Amen.</p>

<p>Further, my dear and much beloved wife, and sister in the
Lord, know that I have received your letter, which comforts me
in my bonds, because I learn that you still remember me and my
fellow prisoners in the Lord, in your prayers, that the Lord
would strengthen and comfort us, and help us finish the good
work by Him begun in us, to His praise and the salvation of our
souls.</p>

<p>O dear lamb, I also beseech you on high from the bottom of
my heart, to keep you from all error of unbelief, and to help
finish, to His praise and honor, and to the salvation of your
soul, the good work which He has begun in you.</p>

<p>Let us pray together with a broken heart, an humble spirit
and a pure conscience, lifting up holy hands, without
contention or strife, praying to God steadfastly in the faith,
then will our prayer be a sweet savor and an acceptable
offering to God; for every gift comes from the Father of
lights.</p>

<p>O my dear wife, lay to heart the virtues which the Lord has
caused to be proclaimed to you, as the prophet says, "He hath
shewed thee O man, what is good; and what doth the Lord require
of thee, but to do justly, and to love mercy, and to walk
humbly with thy God." Micah 6:8.</p>

<p>Always remember those who have walked the way before you
through much tribulation, and have always remained valiant in
the faith, with a firm confidence."Who was ever confounded that
trusted in the Lord?" says the prophet. Hence, dear wife, do
not slightly esteem the great grace which the Lord has shown
you. Always persevere steadfastly, and trust in the Lord with a
firm confidence; He will not forsake you; nor will He leave you
without comfort; for in time of need He succors His own, and
says, "A mother may forget her child, yet will I never forget
thee."</p>

<p>Be of good cheer, I pray you, in your trial, which the Lord
sends you, and take job for an example, how patient he was; and
the Lord blessed him.</p>

<p>I trust the Lord will let His merciful eyes rest upon you
and upon all sorrowing and afflicted hearts, to comfort them by
the Spirit by which He Himself was comforted in His
sufferings.</p>

<p>I am much troubled and afflicted in my heart, when I think
of you, and of my four poor little lambs, whom I must all
leave.</p>

<p>I pray you, Tanneken, remember them in your heart as long as
you live.</p>

<p>Do not forget my request of you, namely, that you walk in
the law of your Lord all the days of your life, and that you be
to my and your children, whom the Lord has given us during the
time</p>

</div><div id="711"> 

<p>of our wedlock, a pattern in all humility and obedience, in
instruction in righteousness,; and take for remembrance, the
Maccabean mother, how she strengthened her children, that they
should not forsake the law of God.</p>

<p>I commend them to you, my dearest wife, and to the Lord. He
will help you; His hand is not shortened, that He cannot help
us. For better is one child that fears God, than a thousand
ungodly children; yea, it were better to die childless, than to
leave ungodly children behind. I pray you, exercise good care
over them; I commit them to you, and to the Lord, for I am
taken from you and them, which greatly troubles me, according
to the flesh; but I remember that it is written, "Whosoever
forsaketh not everything, father, mother, sister, brother,
wife, children, property, lands, yea, also his own life, the
same is not worthy of me;" in short,"Whosoever loveth aught
more than me, is not worthy of me." I do not know what the Lord
has seen in me, when I consider that I am so miserable and
unworthy to suffer for His name. I can praise and thank the
Lord for the great benefits which He has shown me in my bonds.
Well do I now find, that the Lord has helped us. unworthy ones,
especially me.</p>

<p>According to the Spirit, my heart- rejoices in the hope of
future glory. I hope that I shall soon put off this mortal
garment, and put on the immortal; may the Lord direct our
hearts thereto, for we need help from the Lord of hosts, in our
tribulation. See, my dear and much beloved wife and sister in
the Lord, take this, with your little children, as a testament
and, as a remembrance from him who has lived with you in the
bonds of wedlock for about five years. We must now part,
because of the covenant which we made with God., never to
depart therefrom; hence I must now depart from the marriage
covenant, for the sake of the covenant which we made with God;
I now go (though unworthily), the way which the prophets,
Christ, and His apostles went, through much tribulation and
pain, with many tears, and must drink the cup of bitterness
which they all drank. Though the Lord Himself said, "Holy
Father, if it be possible that this cup pass from me, let it be
done; but if not, Holy Father, thy will be done;" yet He was
given us for an example, that we should follow His footsteps in
obedience; for Christ entered into His glory through much
suffering, thereby leaving us an example that we should follow
His steps:</p>

<p>Therefore, my beloved in the Lord, comfort yourself with His
Word, and remember- that John writes, that the Lord said to
Ibis disciples and to His friends, "In the world ye shall have
tribulation; but be of good cheer, your .tribulation shall be
turned into joy." Hence, dear Tanneken, rejoice in the hope of
future happiness; be patient in tribulation, continue instant
in prayer, that the Lord would comfort you and not suffer you
to fall into temptation, but with it also make a way of escape.
Commend your matters to the Lord; I hope and trust in God that, if you continue in His laws, and
constantly keep the Lord before your eyes, He will raise up
some one who -will help, comfort and assist you. Never separate
from the God-fearing. How pleasant it- is to be among. the
Lord's people! I say with Moses, "I would rather suffer
affliction with the people of God than enjoy temporal
pleasure."</p>

<p>Always associate with the saints of the Lord; for among the
holy, one becomes holy, says the apostle.:And remember the
words of the Lord, "He that overcometh shall inherit all things, and be clothed
in white raiment, and God shall wipe away all tears from our
eyes."</p>

<p>O dear Tanneken, it seems that there must be tears; for
where no tears are, none can be wiped away. The Lord grant (as
I trust in Him that He will) that after this tribulation, which
has come upon us for His name's sake, and which is a sore
affliction to my heart, we may rejoice together in the kingdom
of God and of Christ. For, my dear and much beloved wife and
sister in the Lord, whom I love from the bottom of my heart,
together with my four little, children, it, is very hard for me
when I, think of your heavy burden, the spoiling of our
property, and that the Lord has deprived you of the provider of
your daily bread.. I, fain would, had it been the Lord's
pleasure, that He had spared us. this affliction; however as it
cannot be otherwise, we will commend our affliction to the
Lord.</p>

<p>When I consider, Tanneken, our past time, I think that it is
a fatherly chastisement, for He says, "Whom I love I chasten." I well know that we have merited it
at the hands of the Lord, since we ofttimes were disobedient in
the sufferings sent us by Him. When we (as is true enough) had
little success, as the world counts success, we complained and
murmured against God, because we had not more to live on, and
many children were born to us; just as though God's hand had
been shortened, that He could not have fed us. And now that
little vanishes away as a prey, and we must be satisfied;
however, it is for the Lord's sake; and for His sake I gladly
suffer. The Lord gave it me, and for His sake I will also
gladly resign it.</p>

<p>Hence, dear Tanneken, I have often before told you this. I
do not write it to trouble you, but to indicate to you that God
is chastening us; for He shows that He still loves us. Though
the Lord chasten us, let us not cast His chastisement from us;
for He that rejects chastisement and instruction will
perish.</p>

<p>Therefore, my beloved, I earnestly pray the Lord for you,
and for my four children whom God has given me-which you bore
me, and brought forth in pain-that He would not forsake you,
but comfort, strengthen and stablish you, and feed all my four
little orphans, and their mother, both according to the soul
and body. Always trust in the Lord; I trust He will not forsake
you. Take counsel with the Lord, and with them that fear Him;
and take better heed to walk in the obedience of Christ. I</p>

</div><div id="712"> 

<p>am sorry from the bottom of my heart, that I have not
improved my time better. And I ask you to excuse and forgive me
in whatever I have grieved you; for I am heartily sorry for it;
and wherein you may have grieved me, I forgive you all from the
bottom of my heart. And I pray the Lord, that He would also
forgive us the same, as I hope, and also trust in Him, that He
has done: I thank you for the good intercourse we had together
during the time of our wedlock; and I thank also all the
brethren and sisters in the Lord, for the intercourse I had
with them in the faith, for their faces were always pleasing to
me. The Lord grant us grace that hereafter we may all live
together in joy with the Lord, and be crowned with the crown of
salvation, with which all the saints of God will be adorned,
and this out of pure grace. Amen.</p>

<p>This is my testament, my dear and much beloved Tanneken. In
parting, let me tell you, that my mind is still unchanged in
the Lord, namely, I, unworthy one, am determined to bear
testimony to the Lord, and to seal the same with my blood, in
token that it is the truth; nor do I know any other way to be
saved through grace, for a witness to the world, to the honor
of God, and to the salvation of our souls. Amen.</p>

<p>Cornelis, Mattheus, and Christian are also thus minded.
Entreat the Lord for us all, that He would help us finish the
good work by Him begun in us, to His honor and to the salvation
of our souls. Amen.</p>

<p>Pray the Lord for us all, and remember the prisoners, as
being imprisoned with them. All four of us heartily greet you
and them that live in the same house with you, with the peace
of the Lord.</p>

<p>No more for the present; excuse my letter, for my mind is
not in the best condition for writing. Herewith I commend you
to God, and to the rich Word of His grace. Amen.</p>

<p>By me, Hans Symons, your husband in the Lord, confined in
prison at Antwerp.</p>

<h2>A LETTER OF HANS SYMONS, WHICH HE WROTE IN PRISON AT ANTWERP, WHERE HE, WITH THREE OTHERS WAS BURNT, ON THE 13TH OF SEPTEMBER, 1567</h2> 

<p>Grace and peace be unto you from God our Father, and from
our Lord Jesus Christ. Blessed be God, even the Father of our
Lord Jesus Christ, the Father of mercies, and the God of all
comfort; who comforted us in all our tribulation, that we may
be able to comfort them which are in any trouble, by the
comfort wherewith we ourselves are comforted of God. For as the
sufferings of Christ abound in us, so our consolation also
.aboundeth by Christ. And whether we be afflicted or comforted,
it is all for our good, and for our salvation. II C'or. 1:3-6.
This I wish you, my dear brethren and sisters in the Lord,
Vincent, Kaerle, Willem, and Hans Symons, and Tanneken,
Vincent's wife, as a heartfelt greeting in the Lord. And
brethren and sisters in general, I write this that you may remember me, what
tribulation and distress I suffered in Antwerp for the
testimony of our Lord Jesus Christ; and because the time has
come that I must part from you all. Amen.</p>

<p>Further, my dear brethren and sisters in the Lord, and
coworkers and followers of the Gospel, whom God has shown great
mercy in this world, in that He, out of grace, revealed His
will. Hence, dear brethren and sisters in the Lord, I beseech
you from the depth of my heart, that you receive not the grace
of God in vain, for He says, "I have heard thee in a time
accepted, and in the day of salvation have I succored thee."
Therefore, dear brethren, let us not give offense to any one,
that our ministry be not blamed; but let us approve ourselves
as the ministers of God, in much patience, in necessities and
distresses. II Cor. 6:1-4. Hence, dear brethren, accept this as
a sincere request from me, that you take heed to your calling,
wherein you are called to holiness, for He says, "Be ye holy;
for I am holy." I Pet. 1:16. And I pray you, that you show love
to one -another all the days of your life, for Christ says, "By
this shall all men know that ye are my disciples, if ye have
love one to another." John 13:35. If any prosper more than
others, let one assist the other, and do not become alienated
from one another, lest one be grieved on account of another;
but exhort one another with the law of the Lord when ye come
together, and always remember the days when you were
illuminated-how zealous we all were when we came together, to
speak of the great benefits which God has bestowed upon us, in
that He has called us from the power of darkness into His
marvelous light, which is kindled in our hearts, so that we
have surrendered ourselves to serve the Lord all the days of
our life, and no more to live to ourselves. Heb. 10:32; I Pet.
2:9; Romans 14:7.</p>

<p>O dear brethren and sisters, always write the law of the
Lord into your hearts, and keep Him ever before your eyes, and
serve Him faithfully unto the end of your lives; for if there
is anything that is not clear, be it ever so small, in which
the conscience is troubled, Satan produces, by way of
accusation, all he can produce, in order that he may at least
lead astray or trouble us; however, he frequently has cause,
for we all sin in many things, as James says. Rev. 12:10; Jas.
3:2.</p>

<p>Therefore, dear brethren and sisters, awake, and make
straight paths for your feet, that you may always be prepared
for the Gospel of peace, which calls us only to peace,
for.beautiful are the feet of them that fear the Lord. Eph.
5:14; Heb. 12:13; Eph. 6:15; Rom. 10:15. Never separate from
the church of the Lord; for it is the body of Christ, and He is
the Saviour of His body. And though sometimes there are some in
it who do not truly follow the Lord, think, "Lord, I have no
right to sin, too, because another sins, since the Lord has no
pleasure in the multitude of sin, but that everyone turn from
his evil way, and he shall live." And I pray</p>

</div><div id="713"> 

<p>you and all the brethren and sisters in the Lord, that they
do not think it a small thing to grieve their neighbor, whether
by word or deed, or by the putting on of apparel. We can avoid
this sometimes, but we will not, caring not that our neighbor
is troubled thereby.</p>

<p>O dear brethren, when one is apprehended or put into bonds,
or the Lord takes us from this world, it greatly troubles our
conscience. And our stay here is so brief; hence prepare well
your lamps, that when the bridegroom comes, you will not have
to go for oil, for the doors will then be shut. What is a man
profited, if he shall gain the whole world, and lose his own
soul? or what will you give in exchange for your soul? Matt.
16:2:1. Let not sin therefore reign in your mortal body, but
sanctify God in your hearts, and give thanks unto the Father,
who has made you meet to be partakers of the inheritance of the
saints in light. Rom. 6:12; I Pet. 3:15; Col. 1:12. O dear
brethren, how true and certain we daily find it to be, that it
is the truth for which we must suffer, of which I am becoming
convinced more and more every day, though I never doubted that
it was the truth.</p>

<p>O dear brethren and sisters, continue herein unto the end,
and you will prosper; and do not suffer yourselves to be
deceived through philosophy, or vain deceit; through vain pomp
and subtle inventions; for men are soon corrupted from their
simplicity which they -have in Christ, for it is a great grace
which we have received from God, that the truth is revealed to
us, which is hid from so many thousands. Col. 2:8; II Cor.
11:3; Eph. 1:9. Hence, my dear brethren and sisters, think now
of us, how many tortures we have endured, how many sighs we
have spent, how much weeping and supplicating to God we have
done., with strong crying and tears unto Him for help, that you
might be able to keep unto the end the faith wherein you
stand.</p>

<p>O dear brethren, it is so hard for us, and the cup which we
must drink is so bitter. O how am I straightened till the child
is born I These woes are so bitter, dear brethren; I speak the
truth; it is impossible to make any one believe what pain it is
to bring forth a child, except him who has experienced it;
however, when it is born, then the pain is remembered no more.
Thus it is also with me and my fellow prisoners; we are now in
the throes of travail, many a heart grief fills us with
anguish, and we must cry to God for help. And He comforts us,
for He is a God of comfort, who can comfort all troubled
hearts, as He also does. But I hope that we shall soon have
brought forth; then we shall remember the anguish and distress
no more, and all the tears, that now ofttimes course down our
cheeks, so that at times we almost, with David, water our bed
with our tears, will be wiped away; for He is faithful that
promised it us, and will also keep it. We comfort one another
much with the Lord's promises. John 16:21; Isa. 26:17; II Cor.
1:3, 4; Ps. 6:6; Isa. 25:8; I Thess. 5:24.</p>

<p>Therefore, dear brethren and sisters, exhort one another daily, and be subject to one another in love. And I
pray you, dear brethren and brothers-in-law in the Lord, I pray
you, exercise good care over my sisters, for you are placed
over them; the watch over them is committed to you. Dear
brothers, live with them according to knowledge, as I also
trust you will do. I commend them to you. from the heart. And
you sisters in the Lord, and according to the flesh, I pray you
from my inmost soul, in my bonds, which I suffer for Christ's
sake, that you bear with all modesty your husbands, whom the
Lord and His church have given you, that you should live with
them in all subjection and obedience. It well becomes women to
honor their husbands, for a woman of understanding is the crown
of her husband, and the wife is honored through the husband,
and the husband through the wife. Therefore I entreat you, dear
sisters, assist your husbands with all willingness, lest you
discourage them. Oh, if the wife knew what trouble and grief
she can cause her husband in his work, she would shun to do it
as she would shun poison; for the wife can cause her husband to
consume soul and body in his labor. Encourage each other in
spiritual and temporal matters, and always shun whatever might
give rise to trouble, for Satan is wily; he is satisfied with
any means by which he can cause contention; he walks about man,
as a roaring lion, seeking whom he may devour. Hence I beseech
you for the Lord's sake, lay to heart what I write you with
sighing; I do it because I love you all in my heart, and also
all them that fear the Lord. I say with Moses, "I would rather
suffer affliction with the children of God, than enjoy the
pleasures of sin." Always associate with those who fear the
Lord, and pray, lest Satan take you unawares; for when it is
least expected, the Lord comes, as I and my fellow prisoners
can testify. I trust the Lord has thus ordered it with us. We
are now in it; may the Almiehty God help us through, as I trust
He will do. Help pray the Lord for us; for the effectual
fervent prayer of the righteous avails much. Acts, 12:5; Jas.
5:16. I beseech you, my dear brethren and sisters, take heed
unto yourselves; the time is short, and it is a fearful thing
to fall into the hands of the Lord. I Cor. 7:29; Heb. 10:31.
Call to remembrance the day when you were illuminated, how
ardent we were in the law of God, to walk in it. v. 32. I hope
you are better instructed in everything, than I can write. And
above all, I pray you. keep the Lord before your eyes above all
else. and love one another ferventlv</p>

<p>thereby men shall know that you are children of the Most
High, for love abides forever, it never perishes. John 13:35; I
Cor. 13:13, 8. Be hosnitable, remember them that are in bonds,
comfort the sorrowing, remember the poor, each according to his
circumstances. Oh, it gives such peace to the conscience. I
wish indeed I had done much more. Heb. 13:2. 3; II Cor.
1:4.</p>

<p>Herewith I commend you all to the eternal, Almighty God; may
He comfort, strengthen and</p>

</div><div id="714"> 

<p>stablish you all, and us poor, forsaken sheep, -deprived of
all men, unto the end of our lives; for it lies not in the
beginning, nor in the middle, but he that shall endure unto the
end, the same shall be saved. Matt. 24:13. Behold, dear
brethren, I go before, and hope to wait for you under the
altar, where they cry, "Lord, Lord, when wilt thou avenge the
blood of thy saints?" Rev. 6:9, 10. But the Lord will shorten
the days for His elect's sake; and then will He clothe them in
white raiment, and wipe away all tears from their eyes, and
they will see sorrow no more, for it has never entered into the
heart of man what God has prepared for them that love Him.
Matt. 24:22; Rev. 3:5; I Cor. 2:9. Herewith I bid you all a
final adieu in this world, and thank you all for the good
intercourse I have had with you in my life. And wherein I have
grieved you, or any one else, forgive me; I am heartily sorry
for it. I hope and trust to God that He has forgiven it me; and
if there be any one who has wronged me, I forgive him from the
bottom of my heart, no matter who he be. We four, Hans,
Cornelis, Mattheus, and Christian, in bonds for the testimony
of Jesus, greet you and all that fear the Lord with His peace.
Amen.</p>

<p>The mighty God keep you all from evil. Greet my mother,
Charles and his wife; and Maeyken, who took care of my wife.
Adieu to you all. This is my testament to you all, Vincent,
Kaerle, Neelken, Willem, Hans, to each with his wife.</p>

<p>By me, Hans Symons, your dear brother, imprisoned at Antwerp
for the testimony of Jesus.</p>

<h2>A LETTER WRITTEN BY CORNELIS THE SHOEMAKER, TO HIS WIFE WHILE IN BONDS. HE WAS AFTER WARDS BURNED WITH THREE OTHERS, SEALING THIS LETTER WITH HIS BLOOD, IN THE GREAT MARKETPLACE AT ANTWERP, THE 13TH OF SEP TEMBER, 1567</h2> 

<p>The grace and mercy of God the Father, the love of the Son,
and the communion and peace of the Holy Ghost, who is sent us
from the Father, through the name of our Lord Jesus Christ, to
the comfort of all true and faithful children of God; by whom
we are led, taught and healed; the same keep your heart,
understanding and mind in Christ Jesus, to the praise and glory
of His heavenly Father, to the salvation of your troubled soul,
and to the protection of all the brethren and sisters that fear
and love the Lord. This I wish you, my affectionately and much
beloved wife, as a heartfelt greeting.</p>

<p>My dearest wife, whom I wedded before God and His church,
and took to wife according to the ordinance of the Lord, I wish
you comfort, joy and gladness in all your great sorrow which
has now come upon you through my bonds and imprisonment. O my
dear wife, I most earnestly pray the Lord for you, that He
would comfort you, since I well know. my dear lamb- that
you; are very sorrowful on my account. But I pray you, lay your grief aside,
if possible, for a little while, and comfort yourself with the
Author of the faith, and look to Jesus the Finisher. Heb. 12:2.
Walk henceforth in all righteousness; make good use of the time
of grace, and always remember what great grace the Lord has
shown you; and bear in mind what a faithful God you serve, who
will not forsake you. Rom. 6:13; Eph. 2:7; I Cor. 1:9.</p>

<p>O my most beloved iamb, I cannot fully praise or thank the
Lord for all the great power and strength which He gives me in
all my distress. Isa. 40:29. He is so faithful a God, He gives
me such courage, so that I may say with Paul, "Who shall
separate us from the love of God? shall tribulation, or
distress, or persecution, or famine, or nakedness, or peril, or
sword? As it is written, For thy sake we are killed all the day
long; we are accounted as sheep for the slaughter. Nay, in all
these things we are more than conquerors through him that loved
us. For I am persuaded that neither death, nor life, nor
angels, nor principalities, nor powers, nor things present, nor
things to come, nor height, nor depth, nor any other creature,
shall be able to separate us from the love of God, which is in
Christ Jesus our Lord." Rom. 8:3539.</p>

<p>O my dear wife, I pray and exhort you, be patient in your
tribulation, continue instant in prayer, and always remember
the beautiful promises which are so abundantly promised us in
the Scriptures, if we persevere unto the end. Matthew
10:22.</p>

<p>Oh, let us well guard the treasure given us, so that no man
may by any means deprive us of it. Hence continue steadfastly,
and faint not; for though the outward man perish, yet the
inward man is renewed day by day. For our light affliction,
which is but for a moment, worketh for us a far more exceeding
and eternal weight of glory; while we look not at the things
which are seen, but at the things which are not seen, for these
are eternal. II Corinthians 4:7, 16-18.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear and much beloved wife, do not cease to serve
the Lord your God with all your heart, and to follow His
footsteps. For we know that if our earthly house of this
tabernacle were dissolved, we have a building of God, a house
not made with hands, eternal in the heavens, and that we shall
be clothed with it: if so be that being clothed we shall not be
found naked. For we that are in this tabernacle do groan, being
burdened: not for that we would be unclothed, but clothed upon,
that mortality might be swallowed up of life. Now 'He that hath
wrought us for the selfsame thing is God, who also hath given
unto us the earnest of the Spirit. II Cor. 5:1-5.</p>

<p>O my dear wife, since we shall put off the flesh, and
inherit such a dwelling, let us walk fearlessly in faith before
God and His church, and purpose not to depart from the Lord,
nor to separate from His love which He has shed abroad in our
hearts</p>

</div><div id="715"> 

<p>by the Holy Ghost on account of any affliction or
tribulation; then He can succor and comfort you in your
request, when you are deprived of all human help and comfort;
since He comes to the help of those.who forsake their own
selves, and of the despairing, for He dwells and will dwell
alone in the hearts of men, and would not have us serve any one
besides Him.</p>

<p>Thus, my dear sheep, be firmly founded and built up in Him,
as you are taught, and let love grow and increase in all
righteousness and holiness, which avail and are acceptable
before God; and always give diligence to excel in virtue, and
look not to the walk of the idle and heedless, but consider
them-that live conformably to the doctrine of Christ; have your
intercourse always with them, so that you run neither too high
nor too low, nor too wide nor too long; for many go astray
because one looks to the other, whereby they sometimes wax
cold.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear and much beloved wife, always seek those
things which are above, and let yor.r mind constantly be fixed
on the things which are not seen; put off the old man, and put
on the new man, and deny ungodliness and worldly lusts; be
transformed by the renewing of your mind, and you will have
part in the resurrection. Col. 3:1; II Cor. 4:18; Col. 3:9, 10;
Tit. 2:12; Rom. 12:2; Luke 20:35. Hence know that you must
first have crucified the old man, so that the body of sin 'nay
cease. And be not weary in well doing, since your labor will
not be in vain. For we are made partakers of Christ, if we hold
the beginning of our confidence steadfast unto the end. Heb.
3:14.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear wife, suffer not yourself to be moved from
your purpose or faith, for it is, the true grace of God wherein
we stand."For though an angel should come," says Paul,"and
teach you anything else than what has been.preached unto you,
let him be accursed." Gal. 1:8. Neither fear such men as would
draw you away from.this doctrine; for they will perish like
grass; nor can they do anything without. God's permission.
Therefore fear God and humble yourself under Him, for He is
honored of the lowly; always condescend to men of low estate,
and you will be great in the eyes of God; think not yourself
.to be something, lest you deceive; always forsake your own
self, and regard not what men may do unto you, though you be
wronged; for it is acceptable with God, if a man for
conscience' sake gets into grief, suffering wrongfully. Hence
be patient in all that comes upon you for the Lord's sake, so
that you may be a partaker of Christ's sufferings, and thus
inherit His promise; for the time that reproach must be
suffered here is short, compared with the joy which shall be
revealed _in us in the last time; for though we have a
miserable life here, we shall enjoy much good hereafter; we are
accounted here as dying, but we enter into certain rest and
peace. It is sown in weakness, it is raised in power; it is
sown a natural body, it is raised a spiritual body. I
Corinthi ans 15:43, 44. Therefore our house of this tabernacle must
be dissolved, if we want to obtain the house prepared us of
God. Hence fear not them that kill the body; for they cannot
harm the soul. Let us therefore not grieve because of the work
of the Lord, but as Christ says, rejoice and be glad therein,
for it shall be rewarded you in heaven: and, as Peter says,
Praise and glorify the Lord in this matter. Matt. 5:12; 1 Pet.
3:15; 4:16.</p>

<p>O my dear lamb, this is not said, that we should grieve.
Thus, be patient in your tribulation and sufferings; for Paul
says that all things work together for good to them that love
God; hence I trust to the Lord, that it will conduce to your
good. Therefore receive willingly from the hand of the Lord the
sufferings and afflictions He sends you, for He will not suffer
you to be tempted above that you are able to bear. Thus, bear
patiently Christ's sufferings; for all that are without
chastisements are bastards, and not children. Heb. 12:8. James
says, "Blessed is the man that endureth temptation; for when he
is tried, he shall receive the crown of life, which God hath
promised to them that love him." James 1:12.</p>

<p>Thus, my dear wife, follow Christ, and take up your cross
with patience and joy, and follow Him all the days of your
life, for He had to suffer so much for our sakes, to save us.
Therefore let us suffer for His sake; since it is our hour, let
us joyfully contend for the crown of life, which is- prepared
for us and them that fear and love the Lord. Hence let us be
satisfied in Him, and take our cross upon us with joyfulness
and patience, and wait, with firm confidence for the promises
which He has made us, and that we may be crowned upon Mount
Sion, and adorned with palms, and may follow the Lamb. I I
Esdras 2:42; Rev. 14:4.</p>

<p>Thus, strengthen yourself, and wait for the mercy of our
Lord Jesus Christ in the eternal life."Now unto him that is
able to keep you from falling, and to present you faultless
before the presence of his glory with exceeding joy, to the
only wise God our Savior, be glory and majesty, dominion and
power, both now and ever. Amen." Jude 24, 25.</p>

<p>See, my dear wife and sister in the Lord, since I can no
longer serve you with my presence, I have written you a little
to comfort you; and this for a memorial or testament, that
thereby you may remember me, how I walked before you. I hope to
seal this letter with my blood, that it is the truth; and for
this I, want to lay down my life, to the praise of the Lord-,
and to the edification of all who fear the Lord from the heart.
I commit you to the Lord and to the Word of His grace, that He
would keep you in all righteousness and truth. And though we
must separate, yet I know and firmly trust the Lord, that we
shall be together in the life eternal. I hope that you will
always so order and regulate your way all the days of your
life, that you may obtain salvation.</p>

<p>Herewith I bid you adieu, my dear lamb; adieu</p>

</div><div id="716"> 

<p>till in eternity. Adieu and farewell to all that fear the
Lord: Pray the Lord for all four of us, that we may offer up
unto Him an acceptable sacrifice, so that our souls may be
saved forever; to this end may God the Lord give His grace.
Amen.</p>

<p>Written by me, Cornelis the shoemaker, imprisoned for the
testimony of our Lord Jesus Christ.</p><br />

<h1>JACQUES MESDAGH, WILLEM AERTS, JOOS KASTEEL, AND KAREL, A. D. 1567</h1> 

<p>This Jacques Mesdagh was apprehended (with three others; as
he writes) on the lst of March, 1566, and was afterwards, on
the 8th of November, 1567, burnt with three others, for the
Word of God, at Kortrijck, in Flanders, in the marketplace
before the city hall, having been confined, with iron fetters
on his feet, for more than twenty months. He was from Capelle,
to Poele, a league and a ,half from Ypres. With him died a
young single man, named Willem Aerts, and two other men, one of
whom was Joos Kasteel, from the vicinity of Kortrijck, and. the
name of the other was Karel, All four were of very good cheer
and valiantly testified to the truth, and confirmed it with
their death.</p>

<h2>A LETTER FROM JACQUES MESDAGH</h2> 

<p>I, Jacques Mesdagh, imprisoned at Kortrijck for the Word of
God and the testimony of our Lord Jesus Christ, apprehended the
1st of March, 1566; wish you my dearest and- much beloved
chosen sister, from the bottom of my heart and from my inmost
soul, that you may always prosper, and be'well in soul and
body; and grace, mercy, peace, joy, love, a living spiritual
hope, a true evangelical mind and trust, a true unfeigned faith
which works by love, and the illumination, comfort and
communion of the Holy Ghost, be unto you as a grace from God
the heavenly Father, and through our Lord Jesus, by whom this
grace has come to us; for Paul says, "The grace of God [that
bringeth salvation] hath appeared to all men, teaching us that,
denying ungodliness and worldly lusts, we should live soberly,
righteously, and godly, in this present world; looking for that
blessed hope, and the glorious appearing of the great God and
our Saviour Jesus Christ; who gave himself for us, that he
might redeem us from all iniquity, and purify unto himself a
peculiar people, zealous of good works" (Tit. 2:11-14). For He
came and preached the Gospel of peace to us who were afar off,
and to them that were nigh. Therefore we are no more strangers
and foreigners, but fellow citizens with the saints, and of the
household of God; and are built upon the foundation of the
apostles and prophets, Jesus Christ Himself being the chief
corner stone, whom the builders rejected (Eph. 2:17, 19, 20;
Matt. 21:42); who His own self bare our sins, in His own body,
on the tree, that we, being dead to sin, should live unto
righteous ness; by whose stripes we were healed. For we were as sheep
going astray; but are now returned unto the Shepherd and Bishop
of our souls, the King of kings, and Lord of lords; who loved
us, and washed us from our sins in His own blood, and hath made
us kings and priests unto God and His Father; to Him be praise,
glory and dominion, and thanks for ever and ever. Amen. I Peter
2:24, 25; I Tim: 6:15; Revelation -1:5, 6.</p>

<p>This I wish you, my dearest chosen sister in Jesus Christ
our Saviour, whom I love from the depth of my heart and from my
inmost soul, as an affectionate and friendly greeting, and for
a perpetual remembrance, my dear lamb, since it may easily
happen that we shall soon have to separate here; for it seems
that the abominable beast thirsts greatly for our blood. Rev.
13:1. But I hope that though we must now separate here for the
Lord's name, we shall nevertheless hereafter meet together in
life eternal, where there will be nothing but joy and gladness,
which will endure for ever and ever; there tyrants will not be
able to separate or harm us; for when they have killed the
body, they have no more that they can do, as Christ Himself
says. Luke 12:4.</p>

<p>Hence, 'my affectionately and much beloved sister, be not
afraid of their threats, neither be troubled. Even as the Lord
also spake through the prophet Isaiah, "Hearken unto me, ye that
know righteousness, the people in whose heart is my law; fear
ye not the reproach of men, neither be ye afraid of their
revilings. For the moth shall eat them up like a garment, and
the worm shall eat them like wool; but my righteousness shall
be for ever, and my salvation from generation to generation."
For"I am he that comforteth you: who art thou that thou-
shouldest be afraid of a man that shall die, and of the son of
man which shall be made as grass?" Isa. 51:7, 8, 12."For
behold, the day cometh that shall burn as an oven; and all the
proud, yea. and all that do wickedly, shall be stubble: and the
day that cometh shall burn them up, saith the Lord of hosts,
that it shall leave them neither root nor branch. But unto you
that fear my name shall the Sun of righteousness arise."
Malachi 4:1, 2."And everlasting joy shall be upon their head,
they shall obtain gladness and joy; and sorrow and mourning
shall flee away." Isa. 51:11."Yea, the righteous shall shine
forth as the sun in the kingdom of their. Father." Matt.
13:43."And they shall hunger no more, neither thirst any more;
neither shall the sun light on them, nor any heat. For the Lamb
which is in the midst of the throne shall feed them, and shall
lead them unto living fountains of water: and God shall wipe
away all tears from their eyes." Rev. 7:16, 17."And there shall
be no more death, neither sorrow nor crying, neither.shall
there be any more pain." Rev. 21:4.."For he that overcometh
shall not be hurt of the second. death; and he shall inherit
all things, and receive the crown of life."</p>

<p>Therefore, O my dear and chosen sister Susan-</p></div><div id="
 717"> 

<p>nah, let us always faithfully adhere to Christ our
Bridegroom, even unto death, so that hereafter we may
altogether receive the crown of life, and may hear, in the
great day of the Lord, the welcome voice, "Come, ye blessed of
my Father:, inherit the kingdom prepared for you from the
foundation of the world;" when He shall say to the others, "Depart from me, ye cursed, into everlasting fire, prepared
for the devil and his angels." Matthew 25:34, 41.</p>

<p>Oh, what a great difference will then be between them that
obeyed and feared the Lord, and those who did not obey or fear
Him; the latter will have their part in the lake which will
burn with fire and brimstone: which is the second death; but
the former in eternal life. Rev. 21:18; John 3:16.</p>

<p>For he that hateth his life in this world shall keep it unto
life eternal. Christ also said, "Whosoever will lose his life
for my sake shall find [or keep] it." Hence, my dearest and
much beloved sister, whom I love from all my heart, let us
herein always be of good courage and cheer in the Lord, though
the tyrants deprive us of our temporal life for the Lord's
name, and separate us; for we know, says Paul, that, if our
earthly house of this tabernacle were dissolved, we have a
building of God, a house not made with hands, eternal in the
heavens, whose builder and maker is God. II Cor. 5:1; Hebrews
11:10.</p>

<p>O my dear and much beloved sister, that we had put off this
body of our earthly house in Christ Jesus, and were thus at
home with Him, who shall change our vile body, that it may be
fashioned like unto His glorious body; for here we have no
continuing city, but we seek one to come, as the apostle says.
Phil. 3:21; Heb. 13:14.</p>

<p>Oh, that we were there in the beautiful and delightful city,
which is full of all good things, where they will need neither
sun nor moon, nor the light of a candle, to give them light,
for the glory of God shall lighten them, and they shall reign
for ever and ever. Rev. 21:23; 22:5. But we must here first go
the narrow way, as Christ Himself said (DUtthew 7:13, 14),
before we can enter there; far wide is the gate, and broad is
the way, that leadeth to destruction, and many there be which
go in thereat; but strait is'the gate, and narrow is the way,
which leadeth unto life, and few there be that find it; and
still fewer, alas! who desire to walk it, since sometimes it is
so hard for the flesh. For here in this wicked world not much
besides tribulation and suffering is promised to those who
desire to walk the narrow way, to follow Christ, and to live
godly, in this vale of tears, according to their weak ability,
for, in the first place Paul expressly says, "All that will live
godly in Christ Jesus shall suffer persecution." IT Tim.
3:12."For truth is fallen in the street, and equity cannot
enter; yea, truth faileth; and he that departeth from evil
maketh himself a prey." Isa. 59:14,15.</p>

<p>O my chosen sister, whom I love in Ged since the Lord has given us so much grace that we have found the
way of peace, this is the true grace' of God wherein you stand,
says Peter. Oh, let us always walk faithfully therein unto the
end, according to our feeble ability, though we must here for a
short time have tribulation and suffering for the name of
Christ; for we must through much tribulation enter into the
kingdom of God. Acts 14':22. And also Christ Himself says, "In
the world ye shall have tribulation: but be of good cheer; I
have overcome the world." John 16:33. He also says, "Verily, verily, I say unto you, that ye shall weep and
lament, but the world shall rejoice; and ye shall be sorrowful,
but your sorrow shall be turned into joy. A woman when she is
in travail hath sorrow, because her hour is come: but as soon
as she is delivered of the child; she remembereth no more the
anguish, for joy that a man is born into the world. And ye now
therefore have sorrow: but I will see you again, and your heart
shall rejoice, and your joy no man taketh from you." Verses
20-22. Thus are also we with child, and in travail. so that we
can scarcely draw our breath, as is also written in the prophet
Isaiah (Isa. 26:18);* but when we too have here brought forth
all tribulation and sorrow, and have put off our body in the
Lord, we also shall hereafter rejoice with tongues unspeakable,
though we are now here in the pangs of delivery, my dear and
much beloved sister, for the name of Christ, namely, in
tribulation and suffering for a short time, and hated of all
men; for Christ Himself says, "Ye shall be hated of all men for
my name's sake: but he that endureth to the end shall be
saved." Matt. 10:22. And Paul, also, says, "For unto you it is
given in the behalf of Christ, not only to believe on him, but
also to suffer for his sake." Phil. 1:29.</p>

<p>But, my very dear and chosen sister in the Lord, whom I love
from true, unfeigned, godly and brotherly love, it will
hereafter not be to our detriment, all that we have suffered
here for the name of Christ; for He will reward us for it with
joy most abundantly; for as the sufferings of Christ abound in
us, so our consolation also aboundeth by Christ. II Cor. 1:5.
For it is a faithful saying. Paul also says,"If we be dead with
him, we shall also live with him; if we suffer, we shall also
reign with him; if we deny him, he also will deny us." II Tim.
2:11, 12. And Christ Himself says,"If we confess him before
men, he will also confess us before his Father, which is in
heaven."</p>

<p>Hence, my dear lamb, let us always give diligent heed, that
we here, in no wise forsake Christ our Bridegroom, on account
of the sufferings which men may inflict upon us; for the time
that we have to spend here is very short, compared with
eternity. Though we should be compelled all the days of our
life to lie in a dark dungeon for the name of the Lord, it
could not yet be compared to eternity, and to the glory which
shall be revealed in us; for</p>

</div><div id="718"> 

<p>Paul says, "I reckon that the sufferings of .this present
time are not worthy to be compared with the glory which shall
be revealed in us; for our light affliction; which is but for a
moment,worketh for us a far more exceeding and eternal weight
of glory; while we look not at. the things which are seen, but
at the things which are not seen: for the things which are seen
are temporal; but the things which are not seen are eternal."
Rom. 8:18; I I Cor. 4:17,.18.</p>

<p>Therefore, O my most beloved sister, let, us not look at
that which is temporal and perishable; but let us always wholly
renounce ourselves, and daily take our cross upon us, to follow
Christ faithfully and willingly in all that may come upon us
for His holy and glorious name's sake; and think and look on
the reward and the beautiful promises, which will endure
forever. Let us herewith always comfort ourselves with the
beautiful promises of the Lord, which He has given His own who
fear and love Him, and obey Him in everything unto the end.</p>

<p>Thus, my dear and much beloved sister Susannah, let us
constantly obey Him in all things, to do His divine will unto
the end, according to our weak ability, and always wait with
great patience for His beautiful promises, as did all the
pious, holy men who died according to faith, not having
received the promises, but having seen them afar off, and were
persuaded of them, and embraced them, and confessed that they
were strangers and pilgrims on the earth. They had trials of
cruel mockings and scourgings, yea, moreover, of bonds and
imprisonment: they were stoned, they were sawn asunder, were
tempted, were slain with the sword: they wandered about in
sheepskins and goatskins; being destitute, afflicted;
tormented; of whom the world was not worthy: they wandered in
deserts, and in mountains, and in dens and caves of the earth,
and were obedient to their God. For by faith Abraham, when he
was called to go out into a place which he should after receive
for an inheritance, obeyed; and he went out, not knowing
whither he went. By faith he sojourned in the land of promise,
as in a strange country, dwelling in tabernacles with Isaac and
Jacob, the heirs with him of the same promise: for he looked
for a city which hath foundations, whose builder and maker is
God. And by faith, Moses, when he was come to years, refused to
be called the son of Pharaoh's daughter; choosing rather to
suffer affliction with the people of God, than to enjoy the
pleasures of sin for a season; esteeming the reproach of Christ
greater riches than the treasures in Egypt: for he had respect
unto the recompense of the reward. Heb. 11.</p>

<p>Thus, my affectionately and much beloved chosen sister, let
us, too, always be obedient to God our heavenly Father, even
unto death, and also rather choose, as did Moses, to suffer
affliction with the people of God for a little season, here .in
this vale of tears, and to look at the beautiful promise which
is to be realized hereafter; for eye hath not seen, nor ear heard, neither have entered into the heart of man,
the things which God hath prepared for them that love him. I
Cor. 2:9.</p>

<p>Oh, see, my dear sister, how richly those are rewarded who
love and fear God. Oh, why should we not fear and love the Lord
with all our hearts, who .will so richly reward us for it,
since not a single word of His promises shall fail, for He is
so faithful that promised it; though we must suffer tribulation
and persecution here for a little while, for the name of Christ
our Lord. For if the holy men and prophets, and the apostles,
had to suffer, yea, Christ Himself, who is one Head and Master,
how much more ought we, who are poor, sinful and frail men to
suffer, if we want to be found little members of His body; for
the members are surely not better than the head, nor the
servant greater than his lord, says Christ Himself. If they
have persecuted me, they will also persecute you; if they have
kept my sayings, they will keep yours also. If the world hate
you, ye know that it hated me before it hated you. If ye were
of the world, the world would love his own; but because ye are
not of the world, but I have chosen you out of the world,
therefore the world hateth you. John 15 20, 18, 19. And John,
also, says in his epistle"Marvel not, my brethren, if the world
hate you. We know that we have passed from death unto life." I
John 3:.13, 14.</p>

<p>See, my dear lamb, how it has been told us before that we
must be hated and reviled of the world. Hence, let us not be
surprised, though this comes upon us in this evil, wicked,
perverse, and blind world for the name of Christ; but let us
rejoice therein, that we are partakers of Christ's sufferings;
that, when His glory shall be revealed, we may be glad also
with exceeding joy, as the apostle Peter says, "If ye be
reproached for the name of Christ, happy are ye." I Pet. 4:13,
14. And Christ says, "Blessed are ye, when men shall revile you,
and persecute you, and shall say all manner of evil against you
falsely, for my sake. Rejoice, and be exceeding glad: for great
is your reward in heaven." Matt. 5:11, 12. He also says, "Blessed are they that weep now: for they shall laugh." Luke
9:21. Oh, see, my dearly beloved chosen sister, what consoling
words, again, these are, for -those who are here reviled and
persecuted for the name of Christ, and have tribulation.and
suffering. Oh, how can we grieve on this account, or become
weary or faint, when this comes upon us for the name of Christ;
seeing so great comfort and reward are promised hereafter to
those who are faithful to Him unto death, as is written. Rev.
2:10, "Be thou faithful unto death, and I will give thee a crown
of life." O my dear lamb, console and rejoice yourself with the
comforting Scriptures left us for the refreshing and
strengthening of our mind and faith, when you are persecuted
and driven from city to city, and they inflict tribulation and
suffering upon you for the name of Christ, as may easily happen
yet, since I hear that</p>

</div><div id="719"> 

<p>the cruel and abominable beast begins to exalt itself
greatly again over the little flock of the Lord. But they have
no more power than the Lord permits them to have, though they-
greatly exalt themselves, and rage, as though they were
determined utterly to annihilate the little flock, as is
evidently their purpose. But the Lord holds everything in His
hand; He that can bring to naught the counsel of the ungodly,
will, I trust, order it all well, according to His divine will.
Let us always firmly trust and hope in Him, and cast all our
care upon Him; for it is He that careth for us, says the
apostle Peter. I Pet. 5:7. For, whom did the Lord ever forsake,
of those who firmly trusted in Him? and did ever any trust in
the Lord, and was confounded? or did any abide in His fear, and
was forsaken? or whom did He even despise, that called on Him?
Sir. 2:10. Can a woman forget her sucking child, that she
should not have compassion on the son of her womb? yea, they
may forget, yet will I not forget thee, says the Lord through
the prophet. Isa. 49:15. And Christ says: I will not leave you
comfortless. John 14:18.</p>

<p>Therefore, my most beloved, let us always be content with
such things as we have; for He hath said, "I will never leave
thee nor forsake thee." So that we may boldly say,"The Lord is
my helper, and I will not fear what man shall do unto me.''
Hebrews 13:5, 6. For whosoever believeth on him shall not be
ashamed."And if God be for us, who can be against us? He that-
spared not his own Son; but delivered him up for us all, how
shall he not with him also freely give us all things?" says
Paul. Who shall lay anything to' the charge of God's elect? It
is God that justifieth. Who is he that condemneth? It is Christ
that died, yea rather, that is risen again, who is even at the
right hand of God, who also maketh intercession for us. Who
then shall separate us from the love of Christ? shall
tribulation, or distress, or persecution' or famine, or
nakedness, or peril, or sword? As it is written,"For thy sake
we are killed all the day long; we are accounted as sheep for
the slaughter. Nay, in all these things we are more than
conquerors through him that loved us: For no creature shall be
able to separate us from the love of God, which is in Christ
Jesus, our Lord." Rom. 8:31. Hence, 0 my affectionately beloved
sister, who is he that will harm you, if you' be a follower of
that which is good? And be not afraid of their threats, neither
be terrified, if they persecute you, and inflict suffering and
tribulation upon you; for it is better that you suffer for
welldoing; if it be God's will, than for evil doing. For this
is thankworthy, if a man for conscience toward' God endure
grief, suffering wrongfully. For what glory is it, continues
Peter, if, when ye be buffeted for your faults, ye shall take
it patiently? but if when ye do well, and suffer for it, ye
take it patiently, this is acceptable with God. For even
hereunto were ye called: because Christ also suffered for us,
1Pavina us an examr~le that we should follow F-Tic steps: who did no sin, neither was guile found in His mouth;
who, when He was reviled, reviled not again; when He suffered,
He threatened not; but committed Himself to Him that judgeth
righteously. I Pet. 3:13, 14; 2:19-23.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear sister, let us always take diligent heed unto
ourselves, to walk in Christ's footsteps unto the end;-
according to our poor, weak ability; and when they persecute
and afflict us for the truth, let us also commit vengeance*
unto Him who will judge righteously, and before whom all things
are naked and opened (Heb. 4:13): and, as Christ Himself
teaches us, pray for those who persecute and afflict us, that
they would repent, and turn from all this wickedness to the
truth, so that they might also all be saved, and lead a quiet
and peaceable life in all godliness and honesty. For this is
good and acceptable in the sight of God our Saviour; who will
have all men to be saved, and to come unto the knowledge of the
truth, says Paul, I Tim. 2:3, 4; for He- is longsuffering; and.
not willing that any should perish, but that all should come to
repentance. II Pet. 3:9.</p>

<p>But now they will not repent nor turn from all evil to the
knowledge of the truth; for they still delight in persecuting
the people of the Lord, and in shedding innocent blood, even as
the prophet Isaiah says, "Their feet run to evil, and they make
haste to shed innocent blood; their thoughts are thoughts of
iniquity; wasting and destruction are in their paths. The way
of peace they know not, and there is no judgment - in their
goings; they have made them crooked paths; whosoever goeth
therein shall not know peace." Isa. 59:7, 8. And Paul also
says, "Their throat is an open sepulchre; with their-tongues
they have used deceit; the poison of asps is under their
tongues; whose mouth is full of cursing and bitterness: their
feet are swift to shed blood: destruction and misery are in
their ways: 'and the way of peace have they not known</p>

<p>there is no fear of God before their eyes" (Rom. 3:13-18),
as may be seen and. heard in every direction, so that it is
lamentable that so many are deceived, and walk in the broad
way; erring so deplorably from the true way of truth which
leads to life everlasting; and, what is more, those who want to
turn to the way of truth, they would gladly prevent from it
were they able. But they shall exceedingly rue it hereafter, if
they repent not; but alas! it will be too late then, when they
shall say to the mountains and rocks, "Fall on us, and hide us
from the face of him that sitteth on the throne, and from the
wrath of the Lamb; for the great day of his wrath is come, and
who shall be able to stand?" Rev. 6:16, 17; Hos. 10:8; Luke
23:30."And they shall [says Isaiah 2:19], go into the holes of
the rocks, and into the caves of the earth, for fear of the
Lord, and for the glory of his majesty; when he ariseth to
shake terribly the earth." And in John's Relevation it is
further</p>

<p>* In regard to the passage here alluded to (1 Pet. 2:23) see
German version of the Bible. Trans.</p>

</div><div id="720"> 

<p>written, "In those days shall men seek death, and shall not
find it; and shall desire to die, and death shall flee from
them; and shall be tormented with fire and brimstone in ,the
presence of the holy angels and in the presence of the Lamb,
and ,the smoke of their torment ascendeth up forever and ever:
and they have no rest day nor night who worship the beast and
his image: and whosoever receiveth the mark of his name, and
whosoever was not found written in the book of life was cast
into the lake of fire." Revelation 9:6; 14:11; 20:15. Then they
will get their reward for having thus lorded it over the little
flock, and lived after the thoughts of their wicked hearts, and
tormented and persecuted the people and slain those who desired
to live, according to their weak ability, according to the word
and doctrine of the Lord. But they who have suffered for the
truth and the Word of God, shall then be much better off and
happier than those who have persecuted them, and inflicted
tribulation and suffering upon them, and lived in wickedness
and iniquity; for when the Lord will begin to say to them, "I
know not whence ye are; depart from me, all ye workers of
iniquity," there will be weeping and gnashing of teeth;"for not
every one," Christ further says,"that saith unto me, Lord,
Lord, shall enter into the kingdom; but he that doeth the will
of my Father which is in heaven." Luke 13:27, 28; Matt.
7:21.</p>

<p>O my affectionately and greatly beloved sister, let us
always well see to it, and take good heed to ourselves; that we
always do the will of the Father, according to our weak ability
even unto the end, so that we may not - hear with the
others, "Depart from me, all ye that work iniquity," and thus
with them receive reward in the fiery lake which will burn with
fire and brimstone; which is the second death (Revelation
21:8); but that we may enter into the kingdom of heaven with
all the elect children of God, where it will endure forever and
ever. All that we have suffered here, and this for a short
time, for the name of the Lord, namely, persecution,
tribulation, or affliction, will then in no wise be to our
detriment. Matt. ,5:11, 12.</p>

<p>O my most beloved, always be resigned and patient in all.
tribulations and sufferings which may come upon. you for the
name of Christ; and let us ever diligently watch and pray, and
prepare ourselves, till Christ comes, and constantly"lay aside
every weight, and the sin which doth so easily beset us, and
let us run with patience the race that is set before us,
looking unto Jesus the author and finisher of our faith; who
for the joy that was set before him endured the cross,
despising the shame, and is set down at the right hand of the
throne of God. For consider him that endured such contradiction
of sinners against himself," lest ye faint in your distress,
and be wearied in the way of truth, and in the love of Christ,
on account of all that men may do unto- you. But always think
of Christ's great love toward us, how much He suffered for us
poor sinful men on the tree of the cross, and shed His blood for us, as the four evangelists
testify in order to redeem and save us; for, surely He"hath
borne our griefs, and carried our sorrows . . . the
chastisement of our peace was upon him; and with his stripes we
are healed." Isa. 53:4.</p>

<p>O my dear beloved sister, if Christ so loved us that He
suffered for us in the flesh, let us arm ourselves likewise
with the same mind, as Peter says, I Peter 4:1. And also
Paul, "Let this mind be in you, which was also in Christ Jesus:
who being in the form of God, thought it not robbery to be
equal with God; but made himself of no reputation, and took
upon him the form of a servant, and was made in the likeness of
men: and being found in fashion as a man, he humbled himself,
and became obedient unto death, even the death of the cross."
Philippians 2:5-8. And"though he was the Son of the living God,
yet learned he obedience by the things which he suffered;" for
He said Himself, "I came down from heaven, not to do mine own
will, but the will of him that sent .me" (John 6:38); and
though He prayed His Father to take the bitter cup from Him, He
nevertheless said, "Not what I will, but what thou wilt." Mark
14:36.</p>

<p>Behold, my dear lamb, how Christ our Head abased and humbled
and utterly renounced .Himself, and was obedient to His
heavenly Father, even unto the death of the cross, and became
poor for our sakes (II Cor. 8:9), that He might in all things
be an example unto us (I Pet. 2:21), and redeemed or reconciled
us in the body of His flesh through death (Col. 1:21, 22); and
we have the forgiveness of sins, through His blood, according
to the riches of His grace. Eph. 1:7. Hence my dear sister, let
us also, in return, love Christ even unto death, and always
walk in love, as Christ also hath loved us, and hath given
Himself for us an offering and a sacrifice to God for a
sweet-smelling savor. Eph. 5:2. Therefore let us also willingly
deliver up ourselves for His holy name; always wholly forsake
ourselves; renounce our own will and mind; abase and humble
ourselves under the mighty hand of God; no longer live to
ourselves, but unto Him who died for us and rose again (II Cor.
5:15) and always be obedient to Him,. constantly fearing and
serving Him all the days of our life, in all righteousness and
holiness (Luke 1:74, 75), as obedient children, so that we may
not resort to former lusts, in which we were when we did not
yet know Christ, even as Peter says, "But as he which has called
you is holy, so be ye holy , in all manner of conversation;
because it is written: Be ye holy; for I am holy." I Pet. 1:15,
16; Lev. 19:2."For to be carnally minded is death; but to be
spiritually minded is life and peace," says Paul. For, know ye
not, that to whom ye yield yourselves servants to obey; his
servants ye are to whom ye obey; whether of sin unto death, or
of obedience unto righteousness? Hence, as ye have yielded your
members servants to uncleanness and to iniquity unto iniquity;
even so now yield your members</p>

</div><div id="721"> 

<p>servants to righteousness unto holiness. What fruit had ye
then in those things whereof ye are now ashamed? for the end of
those things is death, says Paul. For the wages of sin is
death. For if ye live after the flesh, ye shall die: but if ye
through the Spirit do mortify the deeds of the body, ye shall
live. For as many as are led by the Spirit of God, they are the
sons of God. And ye are the temple of the living God; as God
hath said, I will dwell in them, and walk in them; and I will
be their God, and they shall be my people. Wherefore come out
from among them, and be ye separate, saith the Lord, and touch
not the unclean thing; and I will receive you, and will be a
Father unto you, and ye shall be my sons and daughters, saith
the Lord Almighty. Rom. 8:6; 6:16; 8:13, 14; II Corinthians
6:16-18.</p>

<p>Therefore, O my most beloved sister in Christ Jesus, let us
always separate ourselves entirely from all worldly lusts and
desires, and touch nothing unclean, but constantly cleanse
ourselves from all filthiness of the flesh and spirit, and
continue in the fear of God, according to the Spirit,
constantly to serve and honor the Lord all the days of our
life, that we may be of His sons and daughters; for if we are
His sons and daughters, we shall also be heirs in His eternal
kingdom and possession. Rom. 8:17. Hence let us always give
diligent heed, constantly to fear and serve Him alone,
according to our weak ability, unto the end; for we cannot
acceptably serve two masters, that is, God and the world,
for,"Know ye not," says James,"that the friendship of the world
is enmity with God? whosoever therefore will be a friend of the
world is the enemy of God." Matt. 6:24; Jas. 4:4. John, also,
says, "If any man love the world, the love of the Father is not
in him. For all that is in the world, the lust of the flesh,
and the lust of the eyes, and the pride of life, is not of the
Father, but is of the world. And the world passeth away, and
the lust thereof: but he that doeth the will of God abideth
forever." I John 2:15-17. Paul, also, teaches us, "And be not
conformed to this world</p>

<p>but be ye transformed by the renewing of your mind, that ye
may prove what is that good, and acceptable, and perfect will
of God." Romans 12:2.</p>

<p>Therefore, my affectionately beloved sister, let us by no
means love this world, nor be conformed to it, nor again lust
for this wicked world, to run with it to the same excess of
riot (I Pet. 4:4), lest we perish with it; but let us
constantly go on in the true way of truth, in newness of life,
to serve the living God all the days of our lives (Heb. 9:14),
without looking back to Sodom; and let us always well heed and
do what the holy Scriptures teach and admonish us to, so that
we may in eternity rejoice with God our heavenly Father, and
with the Lamb on Mount Sion; for"all scripture is given by
inspiration of God, and is profitable- for doctrine, for
reproof, for correction, for instruction in righteousness: that
the man of God may be perfect, throughly furnished unto all
good works." II Timothy 3:16, 17. Therefore let us always take good heed
to the holy Scriptures, and accept them for doctrine, reproof
and correction, that we may thereby fit ourselves for every
good work; and let us always exhort one another with them, and
take heed, as the apostle teaches us, where he says, "Take heed, brethren, lest there be in any of you an evil
heart of unbelief, in departing from the living God. But exhort
one another daily, while it is called today; lest any of you be
hardened through the deceitfulness of sin. For we are made
partakers of Christ, if we hold the beginning of our confidence
steadfast unto the end." Heb. 3:12-14. O my beloved sister,
always be steadfast, immovable, always abounding in the work of
the Lord,"forasmuch as you know that your labor is not in vain
in the Lord," says Paul. I Cor. 15:58. John, also, says."Look
to yourselves, that you lose not those things which ye have
wrought, but that ye receive a full reward. For whosoever
transgresseth, and abideth not in the doctrine of Christ, hath
not God; but he that abideth in the doctrine of Christ, he hath
both the Father and the Son." II John 8, 9. Oh, hold that fast
which thou hast, that no man take thy crown; and always be
faithful to Christ your Bridegroom, unto death; this I pray
you, my dear lamb. And ever -be patient in all your
tribulations and sufferings, and stablish your heart; for the
coming of the Lord draweth nigh. Behold, the judge standeth
before the door, and we count them happy which endure, says
James. Jas. 5:8.</p>

<p>Therefore be patient, and comfort yourself with the words of
God; for it is becoming a Christian, that he should both hope
and quietly wait for the salvation of the Lord. Lam. 3:2'6. Let
.the peace of God rule in your heart. Col. 3:15. He which hath
loved us, and hath given us everlasting consolation [and good
hope] through grace, comfort your heart, and stablish you in
every good word and work, and sanctify you wholly, that your
whole spirit and soul and body may be preserved blameless unto
the coming of our Lord Jesus Christ. Faithful is He that
calleth you, who also will do it. And, may He grant you,
according to the riches of His glory, to be strengthened with
might by His Spirit in the inner man; that Christ may dwell in
your heart by faith; and that you may be rooted and grounded in
love. Eph. 3:16, 17. This I pray Almighty God from the depth of
my heart, to grant to you, and me, and all that fear and love
Him.</p>

<p>O my dear chosen sister, whom I love so greatly with all my
heart, I should not be able to describe to you, I think, with
what true, unfeigned godly and brotherly love I love you. Oh,
adhere always valiantly to the true, pure truth and doctrine of
Christ, as I, through the grace of the Lord, most confidently
trust you will do, though I thus write.</p>

<p>O my dearest sister, I also trust, through the great grace
and mercy of the Lord, to do myself according to my weak
ability, all that I have written you; for it is still my
unwavering mind and</p>

</div><div id="722"> 

<p>purpose rather to lay down my life, though it be tomorrow,
than to forsake the truth. For I am still willing to resign my
life for Him who gave it me, if it shall come to this; and,
again, if it be His divine will, that I am to remain in iron
bonds yet for a long time, I will also gladly suffer it for His
holy name; for He suffered so much for us. And I cannot fully
thank or praise the Lord for the great grace, mercy, and the
benefits which He has shown me in prison; and for patience,
that the lying in bonds has so little affected me-it seems to
me that you could hardly believe how little it has affected me.
I am not conscious, it seems to me, that I was imprisoned, or
that it lasted too long, or that I was thus imprisoned; eternal
praise, glory and thanks to the Lord, for His abundant grace
and mercy. However I have sometimes wished, if it could have
been, to be with you, if it had been for the good of my soul,
and the Lord had permitted it; and this chiefly because of the
love which I have towards you, and you to me. My dear lamb, the
Lord be praised, I have never grieved much on account of it,
since it was for the name of the Lord, and I know that we must
once separate here. Though we should be together here a hundred
years yet, the time of separation would nevertheless come, and
it is better to die honorably than to transgress the law of God
and live in disgrace, as is written in the second book of the
Maccabees (6:19). And Christ, also, said, "Whosoever shall seek
to save his life shall lose it; and whosoever shall lose his
life for my sake and the gospel's, the same shall preserve it.
But whosoever loveth father or mother, or sister, or brother,
or wife, or children, more than me, the same is not worthy of
me." Luke 17:33; 14:26.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dearest, when it comes so far that we are
apprehended and put into bonds, everything must be forsaken for
the sake of His holy will and name, if we wish to be of His
number (Rev. 6:11); for he that does not forsake all that he
has cannot be His disciple.</p>

<p>Thus, my affectionately and so greatly beloved sister, when
we think on and well consider, these words, why should we not
gladly forsake all that we have for the name of Christ, and why
should we be sad, urdened or troubled, when this comes upon us
for the name of Jesus Christ our Lord, since Christ Himself has
foretold it. I cannot fully thank,and praise Him for His great,
unspeakable grace and mercy, which He daily shows me, that my
mind and purpose are so gladly, joyfully and tranquilly fixed
upon the Lord. It is at present as well with me according to
the spirit, as it ever was, I think; praise, glory, honor, and
thanks be forever to the eternal, almighty, merciful God, for
His great grace and kindness, that He, through His Holy Spirit,
so strengthens and comforts me, poor, simple, weak, frail
servant, in my mind and purpose; and I pray God, always to
strengthen, confirm and comfort me by His Holy Spirit, unto the
end, and also all those who fear Him, and to give us what is most needful to us all for the salvation of
our souls.</p>

<p>Herewith I will commend you to the Lord, and take
affectionate leave, with the comforting and delightful Word of
His grace, from you, in regard to this matter, for this time.
01 my dearest S.J.H., excuse my simple letter and the small
talent I have received from the Lord; for I have written it
from true, unfeigned, godly and brotherly love, which I bear to
you, my dear, chosen sister, of which the Lord is my witness,
who knows all hearts, and tries the reins, and before whom all
things are naked and open. Jer. 17:10; Acts 15:8. And all that
I have here written to you, my dear lamb, I wish also, from the
bottom of my heart, as a heartfelt and affectionate greeting,
and for a perpetual memorial, to my deeply beloved father and
brother, whom I both love so affectionately. Let all of you
pray the Lord for me, that I may accomplish and finish what I
have begun, to my soul's salvation, to His praise and honor,
and to the edification of my fellow men. I trust to pray the
Lord most diligently for you, according to my weak ability.
Greet one another with a kiss of charity. Peace be with you all
that are in Christ Jesus. Amen. I Pet. 5:14.</p>

<p>This last has been written in the year 1567, the ninth day
of September, by me, Jacques Mesdagh, after being imprisoned
for eighteen months, in iron bonds, for the testimony of Jesus
Christ our Lord, for the sake of the Word of God, and for the
right truth. Herewith I take cordial leave from you. Adieu,
dear friends.</p><br />

<h1>ADRIAN WILLEMS, A. D. 1568</h1> 

<p>In the year 1568 the tyranny and persecution waged against
the Christians became very sore and grievous, so that in said
year many were apprehended and slain.*</p>

<p>On the 4th of April of the above year, between one and two
o'clock in the morning, Adrian Willems, my father, was
apprehended by Steven de Wit, the bailiff of Vianen, and taken
to the castle of Batesteyn, where he was kept confined fifty
weeks and one day.</p>

<p>On the 8th of May the bailiff and part of the members of the
court came from Vianen, to examine him concerning his faith,
which he freely confessed to them. Being then asked as to who
were of the same faith with him, he refused to tell it to them;
hence the bailiff threatened him again and again with severe
examination [the torture], and accordingly, on the 5th of June,
he had the executioner come, caused his hands to be tied behind
his back, and made him climb up a ladder, threatening to have
all his members dislocated, or he would know who were his
fellow believers; but when he saw that he could not extort it
from him, he suffered him to come down, without inflicting any
torture upon him.</p>

<p>* This Adrian Willems was not mentioned in previous
editions.</p>

</div><div id="723"> 

<p>Said bailiff also had a Franciscan monk come, to delude him
from his faith; but after many words and much disputation the
monk left him, without having accomplished anything.
Afterwards, at divers times, others also came, namely, priests
and monks, to draw him from his faith; however, they, all left
like the former.</p>

<p>The letters speaking of the conversations with these priests
and monks, and of his confession, as also other letters written
in prison and received by us, lay, or were put with the others
by me, behind the bedstead under the roof, on account of the
great fear of persecution and the monstrous tyranny existing at
that time. Afterwards it happened, in the year 1570, in
February, that the water came rushing from the Diefdijek with
such force or volume, that many houses drifted away, and some
had their walls broken in, so that said letters fell, into the
water and perished. I greatly mourned the -loss of them,
because our children might in them have seen or read how
valiantly and cheerfully their grandfather confessed the
Gospel, and died for it, and how glad he was when he was
visited in prison;. for I was there myself at great peril.</p>

<p>On the 29th of June of said year 1568, the aforesaid bailiff
announced that he should hold a court the following day, the
30th of . said month; on which he preferred his accusation,
demanding that he should be burned at the stake, until death
ensued, and his property confiscated for the benefit of the
king. Afterwards, many court days having been held, and both
parties having presented their papers, the bailiff did not
cease to request that sentence be passed, whereupon the judges
decided that thirty-two guilders be paid in, to go and get
advice by way of consultation. This having been done, they of
the court went to the court of Holland, and returned with the
sentence of death.</p>

<p>Shortly after, the 21st of March, 1569, he was informed that
he should receive his sentence the following day. Well knowing
that it should be a sentence of death and not of life
(according to the time appointed), he resolved to write, his
wife and children a last farewell letter. When e had begun to
write, a monk came to harass him, in order, if possible, to
hinder him in his faith. He withstood him, and left the monk in
the evening, desiring to rest a little while. The next day at
four o'clock in the morning the monk again came to him, to
torment. as much as possible. Afterwards about eight o'clock
the same day he was taken from' the room in which he had been
confined during his entire imprisonment, with heavy iron
fetters, with which he was shackled night and day, except that
they unlocked them when he took off or put on his garments and
stockings, namely, in the evening when he went to bed, and in
the morning, when he rose. They brought him into a kitchen,
where stood a table with victuals, of which he partook' a
little, and thereupon received a drink from Steven de Wit,
which he accepted in a friendly manner, to leave the former no
ground for suspecting that he bore any ill will, though he delivered him to death. 'The
monk (as heard before) persisted in his attempts to draw him
from his faith, but did not effect his purpose. From there they
took him to the city hall to receive his sentence; with his
hands tied, a monk at his side, and the executioner and two
beadles before and behind him, all well armed; and thus they
led him as a defenseless lamb to the slaughter. When they
arrived in the city hall, the court assembled, and the bailiff
himself demanded the sentence. Then the judge said, "Adrian
Willems, do you wish to say something yet in regard to this?"
He replied, "I know of nothing to tell you, , save. that you
would remember that you must also appear before the judgment
seat of Christ, who shall pass a righteous judgment upon the
good and the evil, or the dead and the living." Then they
arose. When they came out of the council chamber, they
pronounced the sentence, passing judgment, that said Adrian
Willems should be executed with the sword, and his body be put
into a coffin and buried under the scaffold. They then rose
again, with pale and sad countenances, without closing the
court, and left him in the hands of cruel men, who stripped
him, took him out of the city hall with his eyes blindfolded,
and hastened to execute the sentence of the judges, which they
also did. Thus the afore-mentioned Adrian Willems voluntarily
delivered himself up to death, choosing rather to keep his
faith, than to retain his life here for a little while, and
forsake his faith; and committed his soul unto God the faithful
Creator, and thus departed this life, bearing witness to the
Gospel, and confirming his unfeigned faith with his blood.
Amen.</p>

<h2>LUCAS DE GROOT HANGED, A. D. 1'568</h2> 

<p>In the year 1568, a brother named Lucas de Groot, a native
of Ostend, in Flanders, was apprehended there for the testimony
of the truth, and after he had boldly confessed his faith, and
would unwaveringly adhere to it, he was sentenced to be
strangled and burned; the judges, however, afterwards changing
their mind, Lucas was hanged to the gallows, in contempt of the
believers.</p>

<h2>JAN PORTIER BURNED, A. D. 1569</h2> 

<p>In the same year a brother named Jan Portier, a native of
Komene, in Flanders, and a fuller by trade, who had also been
Lady van Meessen's porter, was aprehended at Meessen. When he
had confessed his faith, he was greatly tortured; the first
time with screws; the second time, he was drawn up high by his
thumbs, with heavy iron weights attached to his feet, and thus
severely scourged; but being ruptured, he was not put to the
rack. And when these tortures and other threats could not move
him to desist or apostatize from the truth he had accepted and
apprehended, he was finally sentenced to be burnt. And thus
he</p>

</div><div id="724"> 

<p>was put to death for the testimony of our Lord Jesus Christ,
with so small a fire that the smoke suffocated him; which took
place without Meessen, at the Spring gallows, in November,
1568.</p>

<h2>JAN VAN PARIS, PIETER VAN CLEVES, HENDRICK MAELSCHALCK, AND LAUWERENS PIE TERS, A. D. 1568</h2> 

<p>Jan van Paris, Pieter van Cleves, Hendrick Maelschalck, and
Lauwerens Pieters, had not yet united with the church, but were
novices and ready to unite; hence going to hear the Word of God
preached, they were apprehended, at Ghent, in Flanders, in the
year 1568, and taken to the Count's Castle. After a bold
confession of, and steadfast adherence to, the faith, they were
sentenced in Passion Week, to be strangled and burned. But when
they had mounted the scaffold, the Spanish Provost (there being
at that time nineteen companies of Spanish soldiers in Ghent),
seeing that it was the intention to strangle them, compelled
the executioner to fetch other appliances. Hence the
executioner spoke to the commander-in-chief, who ordered. him,
contrary to the sentence pronounced, to burn them alive. The
provost also severely kicked and beat the brethren.</p>

<p>In the meanwhile the executioner fetched a basketful of
chains. When the brethren heard that they were to be burnt
alive, they raised their voices and sang, "I call upon thee, O
heavenly Father." Then the Spaniards beat them so dreadfully
with sticks, that the eye of one fell out on his cheek. And
thus they were burnt alive, the Spaniards loudly vociferating,
and throwing sticks into the fire at a rapid rate, as desiring
to have part in this madness, as though they thought to do God
service thereby.</p>

<h2>THIS HENDRICK MAELSCHALCK, ON THE 26TH OF JANUARY 1568, WROTE THE FOLLOWING LETTER FROM PRISON AT GHENT</h2> 

<p>We wish you abundant grace, joy, peace, and mercy, and
eternal salvation, from God, our heavenly Father, and our Lord
Jesus Christ, who gave Himself for our sins, that He might
deliver us from this present evil world, according to the will
of God our Father, to whom be praise, glory and honor, and
power and thanks, for ever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>After wishing you all grace and salvation, we would inform
you, Goelken our beloved friend* in the Lord, and all dear
friends that fear the Lord, that we four prisoners at Ghent,
for. the testimony of our Lord Jesus Christ, are still well
according to the flesh, and according to the spirit we thank
and praise the Lord, that He thus strengthens us by His grace;
for it is still our mind and purpose, by His grace and mercy,
always to adhere to the Lord, and to depart from Him neither
for life nor</p>

<p>* The word used in the original denotes a female
friend.-Trans</p>

<p>death. Praise and thanks to the Lord, who thus strengthens
us by His grace, since we are weak and miserable. But through
the help of the Lord we have been able to endure so far, and we
trust through the same Helper to persevere unto the end; for in
that He Himself was tempted, He is able also to succor and
deliver them that are tempted. For He hath said, I will never
leave thee, nor forsake thee; so that we may boldly say with
the apostle, "The Lord is my helper." Phil. 4:13; Heb. 2:18;
13:5, 6.</p>

<p>Now, dearly beloved brethren, if God is with us, who can be
against us; for all men are but the works of His hands, and He
has created everything, and has power to bring it to nought
again at His pleasure; why then should we be afraid of mortal
men? Rom. 8:31; Isa. 51:12. Surely, we must much rather fear
this God; for He alone it is that can save and condemn, and
though we should escape the hands of men, we cannot escape Him.
Hence we will rather say with Susanna, "It is better to fall
into the hands of men, than to sin in the sight of the Lord."
Sus. 23.</p>

<p>Therefore, dear friends, we trust by no means to forsake the
Lord, but always to go on to the promised land, to possess it,
which is full of all good things; to this end, may the Lord
strengthen, confirm and fit us by His grace and mercy, and all
them that fear and accept Him.</p>

<p>I, Hendricks, have written you all, dear friends, a little
about the state of our minds. Further, I would kindly entreat
you, always to continue steadfast in the fear of the Lord; for
they that fear the Lord will do good things, and those who love
Him will strive to do His pleasure, and humble themselves
before Him., If ye fear God, says the prophet, depart not from
Him, but enter into the eternal joy and gladness. They that
fear God shall attain to a good end, and in the day of their
death they shall be blessed. Therefore, dear friends, let us
always fear the Lord With all our heart and mind; let us obey
Him and keep His Word, for they are blessed that hear the Word
of God, and keep it, and they are also those who love Him, and
keep His Word, and he that loves Him is known of Him. But he
that saith, I know Him, and keepeth not God's commandments, is
a liar, and in him the love of God is not perfect. Luke 11:28;
John 15:10; h John 2:4; 4:18. Therefore, my dear friends, let
us love Him, because He first loved us, even as Paul testifies
that, though He was rich, yet He became poor, that we through
His poverty might be rich; yea, He who knew no sin was made sin
for us, that we might be made the righteousness of God through
Him. II Cor. 8:9; 5:21. Hence, seeing we well know that the
Lord has loved us thus, and so abundantly shed His grace upon
us, let us all take good heed that His grace be not bestowed in
vain upon us; for we are made partakers of Him, if we hold the
beginning of our confidence steadfast unto the end. Hebrews
3:14.</p>

<p>Hence, dear friends, as ye have therefore re-</p>

</div><div id="725"> 

<p>ceived Christ Jesus the Lord, so walk ye.. in Him; rooted
and built up in Him, and established in the faith, as ye have
been taught (says the apostle), well knowing that it is the
true grace of God wherein ye stand. Col. 2:6, 7; I Pet. 5:12.
Therefore, always give diligence to make your calling and
election sure; for if ye do these things, ye shall never fall,
says Peter; for so an entrance shall be ministered unto you
abundantly into the everlasting kingdom of our Lord and Saviour
Jesus Christ. II Pet. 1:10, 11. Therefore let us hold fast the
profession of our faith without wavering, and let us always
watch diligently, and wait for the Lord, even as good and
faithful servants, that He do not come at an inopportune moment
for us; but that we may always be prepared, as were the five
wise virgins, who had trimmed their lamps, and went in to the
marriage. But the five foolish virgins had to remain without.
Matt. 25:4. Hence, dear friends, let us not be as were the
foolish, but as the wise. Herewith we commend you to our dear
Lord, and to the comforting word of His grace; may He
strengthen and confirm you all, and us all, in all truth and
righteousness. Amen.</p>

<p>Further, cordially beloved friend Goelken, and all other
friends who read this, accept this in good part, which I have
written in my weakness; for I do not think myself worthy to
exhort you; since I am fully aware that you are well taught -of
God. But I have done this .from love, because I heard that you
desired to have something from us; hence receive this
kindly.</p>

<p>Further, should you wish to know something about our
imprisonment, as to whether it will not soon be at an end with
us, we would inform you that we do not hear much about 'it. We
had expected to offer up our sacrifice before Christmas, for we
had heard said, it should be very soon; however, now we hear
nothing of it, but by the grace of God we are constantly
expecting it. Affectionately beloved friends in the Lord, pray
for us, that we may continue steadfast unto the end, and oiler
up an acceptable sacrifice unto the Lord. We trust to do the
same for you, according to our weakness. Furthermore, we send
you three new hymns, as a cordial and friendly greeting. Though
they are simple, receive them in good part, for it has been
done from love. Farewell; till in eternity. Amen. Greet your
husband very much, and Grietgen your sister, and Bet., and Cor.
Versw., and Anna van L.; and Susanna also greets you all very
much. We further greet all them that fear the Lord.</p>

<p>Written by me, Hendrick Maelschalck, imprisoned at Ghent for
the testimony of our Lord Jesus Christ; on the 26th of January,
1568.</p>

<p>Cordially, affectionately and much beloved friends, the Lord
has truly said that He shall come as a thief in the night; for
yesterday I had concluded and sealed the foregoing letter,
thinking to send it to you; but it happened, that the next
morning all four of us were examined, of which we knew little
when we wrote the preceding conclusion. Hence I say that the Lord has truly said that He shall come
as a thief in the night. I Thess. 5:2. Thus, all four of us
were examined, one after another, in the presence of two
commissaries. They asked us many simple questions, which it
would be too tedious to relate. But they did not ask us
concerning our faith, except whether we were not baptized or
rebaptized. Jan van Paris said he was baptized; Lauwerens said
that he was not baptized according to the Scriptures; Pierken
said that he was not baptized; and I said that we were not
Anabaptists, and that I was not baptized. They asked Pierken,
whether if he should be released, he should have himself
baptized. He answered, "Yes, if I were fit for it." They also
asked him, whether he would renounce his opinion. He replied, "I
do not consider it an opinion, but the true faith." They then
asked me whether I would not renounce my belief or opinion. I
told them that I had renounced lies, and followed the truth.
Hence, if I were to renounce, I should renounce the truth; but
by the grace of the Lord I hoped to adhere to it. In this
manner they continued to ask, so that it would be too tedious
to write it. To Jan van Paris they said that we should. soon be
dispatched, and that we should be patient for nine or ten days
yet; they also said that they should send us men who should
instruct us, and if we desired to hear them, we might do so.
Hence we expect to have priests here; but we trust to keep our
eyes open, for we well know what they seek. Thus, dear friends,
all of you, we are of good cheer, the Lord be praised and
thanked forever; and by the grace of the Lord we trust to keep
the faith, whether it be life or death. Thus, dear friends, we
think our confinement will not last much longer; for it seems
that we have been delivered over to the lords of the council,
and that they have orders from the Duke of Alva to dispatch us,
and that the bailiff and the judges have nothing more to do
with us. Hence we take leave from you all, dear friends, and
pray you always to be diligent. We hope to go before; may the
Lord by His grace and mercy strengthen and fit us thereto.
Amen. Written on the 27th of January, 156$. By me. HENRY
MAELSCHALCK., "And fear not them which kill the body; but him which hath
power to cast both soul and body into eternal darkness." Matt.
10:28.</p>

<h2>JACOB DIRCKS, WITH HIS TWO SONS, ANDRIES JACOBS AND JAN JACOBS, A. D. 1568</h2> 

<p>In this bloody and perilous time of persecution, also pious
Jacob Dircks and his two sons, Andries Jacobs and Jan Jacobs
fell into the hands of the tyrants. This Jacob Dircks, a tailor
by trade, resided with his family at Utrecht, and as he was
spied out there as one belonging to the persuasion of the
Mennists, and as the lords wanted to apprehend him he from fear
of the tyrants fled to Antwerp. His wife, who did not hold
these views, still remaining there for some time, the
thief-catchers</p>

</div><div id="726"> 

<p>seized their property, and took about half of it, While
Jacob Dircks resided with his family at Antwerp, his wife died
there, and he and his aforementioned two sons, though having
escaped the hands of the tyrants at Utrecht, subsequently fell
into the claws of the wolves at Antwerp, where the trial of
their faith was found much more precious than of gold that
perisheth, though it be tried with fire (I Pet. 1:7); so that
they were together condemned to be burnt, each at a stake, only
for the divine truth, and living according to it, and not on
acount of any crime committed. On their way to death, Jacob
Dirck's youngest son, named Pieter Jacobs, met them, who, as he
in his great sadness and sorrow, put his arms around his
father's-neck, was instantly most cruelly seized by the
thiefcatchers, and thrown under the feet of the people
following. With what sorrow the father and the brothers beheld
this is easily imagined. When the father and his two sons had
each been placed at a stake, he said, "How is it my dear sons?"
Each replied, "Very well, my dear father." Andries Jacobs being
betrothed at the time, his bride and his sister viewed from a
distance with sorrowful hearts and weeping eyes this offering,
how their bridegroom and brother, forsaking a temporal bride, and
temporal relationship, chose the eternal Bridegroom Christ
Jesus above all visible things. Thus these heroes were
strangled, each at a stake and then burnt, sealing the truth
with their death and blood on the 17th of March 1568. Therefore
they shall also, for their severe travail, hear the sweet and
welcome voice of Christ, "Ye good and faithful servants, ye have
been faithful over a few things, I will make you rulers over
many things; enter ye into the joy of your Lord." And, again,
the king will say, "Come, ye blessed of my Father, inherit the
kingdom prepared for you from the foundation of the world."
Matt. 25:23, 34.</p>

<p>This narrative is recorded from the accounts of trustworthy
persons, who witnessed this offering themselves.</p>

<h2>KAREL DE RAET, AND GRIETGEN HIS WIFE, HANS KEN IN'T SCHAECK, WILLEM DE SNIJDER, WITH CHRISTIJNTGEN HIS WIFE, A. D. 1568</h2> 

<p>On the third of May, 1568, some brethren were assembled at
Tillegem, near Bruges, in Flanders, to hear the Word of God
preached, when they were</p>

</div><div id="727"> 

<p>unexpectedly set upon by some who had come out to get
may-poles, and five of them were apprehended, namely, Karel de
Raet, a shepherd, barn at Wingen; Hansken in't Schaeck, called
Hansken Koordedraeger, from the Schaeck at Kortijck; Willem de
Snijder of Honschote; and two others who, since they did not
valiantly adhere to the truth, are not worthy to have their
names recorded here. The wife of Karel de Raet, and that of
Willem de Snijder, were not apprehended with them, nor had
Karel's wife as yet united with the church, but was ready for
it. Thus it happened, when these men had been apprehended, that
Maerten Lem, a burgomaster of Bruges, went out, about twelve
o'clock in the night, with the watchmen, and first apprehended
Christijntgen, Willem Snijder's wife, and when a watchman was
desirous of turning Maerten Lem off from the house where
Grietgen, Karel de Raet's wife was to be sought for, and they
were rapidly walking along the fortress, between the Asses Gate
and Jerusalem, Grietgen with two of her children unexpectedly
met them, which caused Maerten Lem to say, "See, God gives this
whore into our hands;" and he asked her, "Where are you going?"
Greatly amazed, she replied, "To church." Thereupon he said, "It
is no time now to go to church. Where is your husband?" She
answered, "You know it well." He asked whether the two children
were baptized. She said, "No.""Have they no name then?" he
asked."Yes," she replied."Well how is this?" said he;"Have they
a name before they are baptized?" She replied, "Dogs and other
animals receive names; how much more should children, that are
created after the image of God? I was not aware that my lords
of Bruges are so blind yet.""If you want to talk this way,"
said Maerten Lem,"You shall be burnt.""I know it," she
replied;"But then the crown of life is prepared for me." And
thus these two women were likewise taken to prison, where much
vexation, pain and suffering were inflicted upon them, as also
upon the three men mentioned, to draw them from the faith; but
all in vain. Hence, first the men were sentenced to be burnt on
the Hillige, near Bruges, where they also boldly offered up
their sacrifice; and a few days after, also the two women,
because they steadfastly adhered to God, and His truth, were
sentenced, and burnt in the castle in Bruges. And they now wait
together for the coming of Him that shall come to avenge all
their sufferings.</p>

<h2>JAN DE SMIT, DANIEL DE PAEU, DANIEL VAN VOOREN, AND PASSCHIER WEYNS, A. D. 1568</h2> 

<p>In the year 1568, at Ghent, in Flanders, also four brethren
were apprehended, namely; Jan de Smit, Daniel de Paeu, Daniel
van Vooren and Passchier Weyns, who boldly confessed their
faith and all the articles in regard to which they were
examined, and were not ashamed of God and His Word, but valiantly 
and undauntedly contended for the truth accepted and
apprehended; against all that withstood them, unwaveringly even
unto death, which they therefore tasted, as valiant soldiers;
first, Jan de Smit, and shortly after, the other three. But
they obtained to live forever where the new wine will be given
them to drink in the Father's kingdom.</p><br />

<h1>VALERIUS SCHOOLMASTER MARTYRED, A. D. 1568</h1> 

<p>A. D. 1568, a God-fearing, pious brother, called Valerius
Schoolmaster, having in his time exercised the functions of
schoolteacher at Hoorn, in Holland, and at Middelburgh in
Zealand, was apprehended for the testimony of Jesus, at
Brouwershaven, in Zealand. He was a zealous follower of Christ,
and would not hide the talent he had received in the earth, but
put it with great diligence out upon usury; so that in paths
and highways wherever he saw a fit opportunity, he exhorted the
people with the word of God, threatening the sinner with the
terrible punishment and vengeance which at the speedy
appearance of Christ from heaven will fall upon all
ungodliness; and, again, comforting the penitent with the great
and glorious promises and rewards which the Lord God at the end
of the world will give to all believers. In consequence of this
he incurred the displeasure of benighted men, who can neither
hear nor endure the light of the Gospel, so that once he was
put in bonds at Goes, in Zealand, but was released again,
keeping his faith. Finally, however. he was apprehended at
Brouwershaven, in the district of Zierickzee, where he suffered
many assaults and long imprisonment, but by the grace of God,
overcame everything, and attested and sealed the faith of the
truth with his death and blood, and thus, through grace,
obtained the crown of eternal life.</p>

<p>He also was not idle during the time of his imprisonment,
but wrote two excellent little books, well worth reading, and
sent them from prison. The first is entitled, Of <i>the
Decrease and Decay of the Apostolical Church;</i> and <i>Of the
Rise of Antichrist, and how the Light of the Gospel is obscured
by him.</i> Written in the sixtieth week of his imprisonment;
together with an earnest exhortation ,to apostates from the
Word of God, that they may seek the grace of the Almighty
betimes, while He is yet to be found.</p>

<p>The other book bears the title, 1.<i>The Proof of Faith;</i>
in which he teaches with great earnestness, to count this world
and all visible things nothing but mere loss and dung, so only
Christ be won. Wherefore he exhorts all believers, to become
poor for Christ's sake, and to expect riches hereafter with God
in heaven. Hence he greatly commends the Dovertv and piety
still remaining in Menno Simon's S. G., and says that herein he
puts to blush many others. We have therefore added here, for
his remembrance, the first Dart of said book, that by this
little the reader may judge of all the remain-</p>

</div><div id="728"> 

<p>der, which would be too long to adduce .here in full. He
wrote it the fourteenth week of his imprisonment. Read it with
attention., "Natural, impartial reader or hearer, who have any
understanding, you may well know and imagine that a man that is
so depraved and wicked, and has done so much evil, as to insure
his death, in case he were apprehended, ought to be afraid of
committing any more evil, lest at last he be apprehended' and
put to death. But if he do not cease from evil he may at last
be apprehended for his crimes. Then, when imprisoned, he tnay
reflect and concern himself night and day,. how he may escape
or obtain his liberty, whether by strategy, violence or
breaking outand all this, that he might, prolong his uncertain
life for a little while, which, though he should escape, he
must ultimately relinquish. And if a poor prisoner cannot help
himself, he may consider whether some good friend' cannot
assist him. And if his friend fail him, he may meditate whether
the judges might not be merciful to him, at whose feet he may
fall, and implore them to spare him in mercy; moreover, he may
promise thoroughly to reform, and that he will commit such or
like misdeeds no more all the days of his life. And when the
prisoner has done this much, yea, all that he knows to do, and
all his plans, and everything else, prove of no avail, he may
in desperation give up all courage. And when he sees the monk
coming, he may become, greatly alarmed, knowing that his
confessor (who with lies and vain consolation may promise him
eternal life, thereby seeking to assure his soul) is the
harbinger of his death; and when the doomed man hears the court
pro nounce his sentence of death, he may become still more
afraid and dismayed. And when at last he is led to death, and
beholds the instrument of his death, the gallows, wheel, stake,
or water, he may most of all fear and quake, so seized -with
mortal dread and horror as though he were dead while still
living, unless he be assured by the priests or some other
liars, of his salvation, in which case he might be of good
cheer-one in this way, another in an other way. And if some one
should bring to this doomed criminal under the sword or at the
stake, good news assuring him of his life, and tell him to
arise and he himself should kneel down in the'malefactor's
stead, how joyfully should the latter- with gratitude accept
his transient life! But Christ, who gives redemption and
eternal life by His death, few are willing gratefully to accept
aright and unto repentance. John 3:16; Col. 1:14; Isa.
53:4., "Now, suppose that the doomed criminal were a filthy,
unclean harlot, imprisoned for a crime, or for having herself
alone committed (if it were possible) all the wickedness and
sins ever perpetrated by the whole world, for which she were
condemned to the most shameful death that could be devised</p>

<p>and the King should send His only, beloved Son from His
kingdom and glory into'great poverty, imprisonment; suffering
and an innocent death, in the stead of the unclean harlot, who
by all manner of contempt and evil-doing had angered the King, and
,merited death a thousand times, but is now nevertheless, out
oft grace, through the death of the King's Son (.on condition
of her amending) reconciled to the King, made at peace with
Him, liberated from prison, and delivered from death, and
remains alive, a partaker and heir of all the riches of the
King; ought she not to accept,this great love and grace; love
the King, amend her ways, and be greatly afraid of vexing the
King any more all her life, who cleansed her, forgave all her
evil deeds, paid all her debts, espoused her as his beloved
queen, exalted her into his glory; and protected her as himself
from all enemies? But if she should not amend, (according to
her promise), should again anger the King, and do worse than
before, were this not great ingratitude, worthy of sorer
punishment than before'? Hereby we may prove ourselves, whether
we that are redeemed through the grace of God, also keep the
promise of amendment. And though all this were to happen thus,
a thing which was never heard of or seen, nor ever occurred;
yet, since it were but temporal and of short duration, it is
not an adequate comparison to that which is eternal and
intransient, namely, the love of God, which has come to us
through Christ His beloved Son.</p>

<p>For God so loved the condemned world, His enemy, steeped as
it was in sin,. and lying in wickedness, that lie spared not
His only Son, but sent Him from His glory in heaven, and
delivered Him up to the ignominious and cursed death of the
cross that whosoever believeth, should not perish or be
condemned, but, through the love, mercy and grace made manifest
through Christ, be acquitted, blessed, redeemed, cleansed from
sin, protected from the wrath to come, wooed, wedded and
exalted as His chosen bride, obedient wife (Hos. 2:20), and
glorious 'queen, and His eternal and imperishable kingdom, and
live with joy unspeakable; whereas we were so 'unclean in our
sins, polluted in our blood, no one attending to us (Ezek. 16),
taken captive by the devil at His will, and sentenced by God,
according. to His. justice, to eternal death and damnation.</p>

<p>Now let us well consider and advise with ourselves
according to the simile of the criminal, imprisoned . harlot
under the sword or at the stake. Let us well examine ourselves,
whether we have risen from our sins,amendeda and still daily
amend, and whether we have rightly accepted, by the faith which
worketh by love, this love, grace and redemption of God, made
manifest through Christ, and whether we in return love God,
keep His commandments, and are afraid of offending Him.</p>

<p>The world was by nature corrupted by sin, and judged or
sentenced to condemnation, so that Christ did not come to judge
or to condemn that which was already judged, but to redeem from
judgment and condemnation all those who rightly, by faith;
accept His grace (Tit, 2:1.1), that is, those</p>

</div><div id="729"> 

<p>who die unto and forsake their sinful life, repent and
amend; in a word, those who are born again, live after the
Spirit (John 3; Rom. 8), as the Scriptures abundantly testify
in many places.</p>

<p>But the others, who do not rightly accept, by faith, unto
the amendment of their entire life, according to the holy Word
of the Lord, this love, grace and redemption, abide
notwithstanding, held captive by their sins, under the
condemnation and wrath of God, and will on account of their
unbelief, impenitence and unrighteousness not see the kingdom
of God, nor inherit eternal life, because they still continue
in sin, and thus cannot receive edemption and forgiveness of
sins; and if they have once received it, yet, when their new
sins exceed the old ones, it may go worse with them than
before, because they are so ungrateful, and do not keep their
promise of amendment. For Christ bore our sins in His own body
on the tree of the cross (on this condition of our amendment)
that we believers, being dead to sins, should live unto
righteousness: by whose stripes we were healed. For we were as
sheep going astray; but are now returned unto the Shepherd and
Bishop of our souls. I Pet. 2:24, 25. From this we may clearly
perceive, that those who do not die unto their sins, nor live
according to righteousness, are not yet healed or redeemed by
the stripes and death of Christ; for they are not yet by faith
returned unto God, from their sins, wherein they still live.
Hence they in vain assure themselves, of eternal life, and of
their redemption by the death of Christ, since they are still
bound by their sins. Either they must turn from their sins to
God, obediently to serve Him all the days of their life, in all
holiness and righteousness of faith which is pleasing in His
sight; or they still remain captive, unbelieving and condemned,
as the Scriptures declare more abundantly than I can designate;
for I have never had a. Bible in prison. Let each examine
himself. II Cor. 13:5.</p>

<p>Mark now, how poor mankind receive redemption and
salvation, as they think. One hears and sees openly enough that
almost the entire population of Europe are called believing
Christians, though by their wicked works they hardly show that
they are natural men, since they live more unnatural than
irrational beasts. Nevertheless, they are taught by their
teachers, that they are called children and heirs of God (Ezek.
13:10), which they, also claim they are, being so firmly
persuaded of and settled in it, that there are very few of them
who can be turned, advised, helped or drawn out of the prison,
water, or fire of damnation (Jude 23); for they are already too
wise in themselves, already helped, and delivered from death as
they think and say, though in this their sinful life and
ungodliness, they live enveloped in perdition; and clothed with
a beautiful name, being called Christians and children of God,
though they lead a worse life than do Jews, Turks, or Saracens,
who do not pretend to be Christians, as these, who so openly
and shamelessly forsake Christ, in idolatry with wood and
stone, which they call an excellent worship; in avarice which they
style only industry; in pride, which with them is only
neatness; in lasciviousness and adultery, which they term only
friendship; in drunkenness, which they call enjoyment,
pleasure, glee, good naturedness, or good cheer, even as they
know how to name and varnish over every form of wickedness and
sin, as though they were nothing but virtue and righteousness.
As though they were blameless, many of them are not willing to
be reproved for the lusts of their flesh, in dicing, gambling,
singing, jumping, dancing, strutting, boasting, in order to be
nowhere the least, but everywhere the first, if possible; in
vain, false, and renowned arts of earthly worldly and carnal
wisdom; in litigating, suing, swearing; in subtle, fraudulent,
wicked inventions and traffics; in lying, cheating, quarreling,
cursing, fighting, and killing, if not in deed, then with the
heart; in hatred and envy, defaming, backbiting, foolish
talking, jesting, joking, unprofitableness, impropriety, in all
manner of lustfulness and wantonness. This is nearly everywhere
as common as daily bread; herein and herewith they spend, abuse
and fritter away, to the perdition of their souls, the precious
time of grace, their life, and every good creature of God;
which good gifts of God we have received from His grace for our
good, thereby obediently to serve our God and Creator blessed
forever, to the honor of God, the salvation of our souls, and
the edification and love of our neighbor. For God is not
willing that any should perish, neither has He pleasure in the
death of sinners; but He is longsuffering, and waits for all to
repent and will have all men to come to the knowledge of the
truth, and be saved. II Pet. 3:9; Ezek. 33:11; 18:32; I Timothy
2:4.</p>

<p>What more should our Lord God do for man, than He has done?
Does not then men's condemnation proceed from their unbelief,
disobedience, neglect, abuse, guilt, sin, -obduracy, and
ingratitude, because they will not by faith unto repentance
accept this grace and incomprehensible love of God? But they
reject this repentance, and would still enjoy this grace and
salvation in their sinful life, from which they do not turn.*
For since men have also the freedom to abuse themselves or
their own life, and every creature of God, though this is not
the will of God, only He permits it, therefore men, by their
first birth, live contrary to the Word and will of God, hence
unnaturally, disobediently, ungratefully, unreasonably,
heedlessly, according to the will of the devil, are devilishly
and carnally minded, covetous and ambitious, unmannerly,
immodest, faithless, perjured, hateful, envious, unmerciful,
without compassion, impatient, morose, cruel, and revengeful;
in short, had men the power of wealth, and of their body, and
were there no human authority which they fear and dread more
than God, men might live in such an inhuman manner that we
might almost have a hell upon earth; for though</p>

<p>* See whether a criminal is pardoned, if he is not willing
to amend his ways.</p>

</div><div id="730"> 

<p>now men are feared more than God, still it is altogether too
bad.*</p>
<p>Many that are poor refrain from drunkenness because they
have no money or pledge, while the rich may refrain from it on
account of their honor or pride, or because they have no
company according to their liking, or because they wish to
preserve their health and mind; and for such reasons also
lasciviousness is avoided. Men often refrain from stealing on
account of the gallows, and from murder because of the wheel;
in short, every sin is left uncommitted more on account of
constraint, shame, and fear of men, than from voluntary
goodness for the Lord's sake. And though men are so devoid of
shame and given up to evil that they openly keep brothels, and
live far more detestably than beasts; they are nevertheless
called Christians, and claim to be children and heirs of God by
grace. How much more then those who manage it a little more
decently and secretly, as they think, though they frequently
are much worse? Can one do worse, than those who without shame
live in adultery and other secret sins, when God the Lord knows
every secret of the heart? Rev. 2:23; 16:7. Oh, if men's sins
were written on their foreheads, how constantly would they keep
in the house, and conceal themselves in corners, holes and
dens, so as not to be seen by men.</p>

<p>But they are not ashamed before God, nor afraid of Him,
from whom they cannot hide; and who can kill the body, and cast
both it and the soul into the fire of hell. Intelligent and
impartial reader or hearer, prove whether these false
Christians in this their improper and unchristian life can be
saved though God's mercy and the death of Christ, or not? even
as they presumptuously say, that the kingdom of heaven is for
them, and not for the beasts, and besides utter so much
nonsense, as though they were raving, as they also are, so that
a true Christian may well be ashamed and afraid to see or hear
their madness and their unrighteous works. II Pet. 2:8.</p>

<p>O depraved and wanton men I Though the Jews, because they
were called AbrahpLm's seed, claimed to be God's children,
Christ showed them that a thief, liar and murderer from the
beginning, even the devil, was their father, because their
works were evil. John 8:44. This may have seemed strange to
them, even as it may seem strange to those who obey not the
Gospel of Christ, that according to the testimony of the holy
Scriptures they are called, and are servants of sin (Rom.
6:20), an evil and perverse generation of serpents, vipers and
adders (Matt. 3:7), the seed of the devil, children and heirs
of wrath (Eph. 2:3), accursed and of eternal damnation, seed of
Cain, Ishmaelites, filthy swine, devouring dogs, ravening
wolves in sheep's clothing (Matt. 7:15 ), that is, under the
cloak of sanctity, uncircumcised, gentiles, aliens and
strang-</p>

<p>* Many think they are good Christians, because they do not
steal or commit murder, and because they do not perpetrate
violence or highway robbery, or because they refrain from evils
which they can or dare not do; however, this is no virture in
their case ers from the covenants of the promise of eternal life, who
have no part in the kingdom of God, though they entertain a
vain hope of it; without God, without Christ, godless and
idolatrous in the world. These evil works are the nets, snares,
fetters, blocks, chains, bonds, and imprisonments, with which
the prince of this world, the devil, who works in the children
of disobedience holds men captive, blinded and bound at his
will. Eph. 2:2; II Tim. 2:26. And so long as the false
Christians go or creep about bound by their sins, and entangled
in their unrighteousness, they boast in vain and heap one great
lie on top of another, when they boast that through Christ they
are redeemed and freed from their sins, when they still live in
their toils, and because of their unbelief and disobedience are
predestinated unto eternal damnation, unless they turn from
their sins to God, and by faith rightly receive His grace unto
repentance; whereby they will not perish, but are predestinated
to eternal life, and become vessels of honor prepared unto
glory, according to my simple view. Rom. 9:23.</p>

<p>Mark what Christians these are, because they say that there
is a gracious God, which the devil also believes, and trembles;
moreover, they say that they are sorry for their sins, and
still they go on in them, the longer the more, the older the
worse, and under the cloak of the grace of God commit all kinds
of sin, the one in this, another in that, so that no wickedness
is left undone. Let every one search the secrecy of his heart,
and he will better understand and find what I, prisoner, here
write. One man cannot alone commit all these sins, for his life
is too short and insufficient. For it is generally seen that
sins leave men when sickness or old age comes, which, however,
does not tend to their repentance, amendment, or salvation,
though many who are robust and healthy abandon and deceive
themselves, saying: I shall repent when I am old, when I lie
upon my death bed, or I care not longer to serve the world; if
any one sorrows for his sins then, and the end is good, all is
well., "O vain consolationl for what kind of repentance can that
be, when one is no longer able to commit sin and wickedness? it
is nothing but mocking the Lord, sinning presumptuously, and
rejecting His grace. Oh that all men captive in sin at the will
of the devil (II Tim. 2:26), would always consider this, and
thus give the more diligence, so that through grace their souls
might become disengaged and free from the snares of the devil,
or sin; even as a prisoner according to the body gives
diligence to obtain his liberty, so as to escape bodily death
for a brief and uncertain time yet, though he ultimately cannot
escape it. If men believed that God is just, and that He will
not suffer any evil to go unpunished in impenitent sinners,
they would be terrified, and through fear of God's righteous
judgment forsake their sins; but now they are comforted in
their misfortune by their preachers, with flattering, words and
soothing sermons with</p>

</div><div id="731"> 

<p>grace, peace, mercy and salvation; whereas they ought to be
reproved for their sins, and threatened with the anger, wrath,
fury and displeasure of God (Rom. 2:8), and eternal damnation,
so that they might repent while the door of grace is open for a
little while yet. II Cor. 6:2.</p>

<p>I know of nothing that so securely and firmly holds men in
the sleep of sin till the Lord comes as a thief in the night,
as to call good evil (Isa. 5:20), the Gospel a sect (of which
all manner of evil and falsehoods are spoken), and to change
the truth into lies. The Christians are called,heretics and
deceivers; every good work, virtue and righteousness is so
misnamed, perverted, painted in such abominable colors, and the
worst construction put upon them, so that men are afraid of
them, as though they would be led astray by the truth, and of
God. The devil, on the other hand does trot appear half so ugly
as he is represented and I have here described him, but
disguised by a beautiful semblance of love, and changed and
transformed into an angel of light, as though he were sent of
God, and were himself Cod. II Thess. 2:4.. Then are his lies
called nothing less than Gospel and truth; Babylon is called
the church of God; idolaters are styled my lords; lying and
cheating are termed prudence and cleverness; fighting is called
valor, and murder, simply misfortune; and thus, many like
shameful deeds, upon which an honorable construction is put, so
that evil is called good. But woe unto such, as Isaiah says.
Isa. 5:20. Thus, the ministers and children of the devil know
how to change, gloss over, name, and construe in the most
favorable light into good works virtues, and all manner of
righteousnesses, all their evil works, vices, sins, and
manifold unrighteousnesses; as avarice into industry and pride
into neatness.</p>

<p>Who can reprove them therein? And therewith the devil
blinds them so artfully and firmly to his will, so that they
think themselves to be pious Christians, and are not willing to
be reproved by' the truth for their sins, but claim to be
unblamable children of God; moreover, they say, like Christ's
disciples: 'Our Father, etc.' But let everyone examine himself,
whether he is born of God, because he knows how to palliate his
'sins; and whether he so sanctifies and adorns the name of God,
and does His will, and whether he carries himself before God as
an obedient child before his father; otherwise he joins lie
upon lie in his prayer, which in that case is a curse and an
abomination before God. In short, he that committeth sin is
born of the devil, and knoweth -not God, John 8:44; I John 3;
and they that are carnally, minded cannot please God. Hence,
mark whom impenitent sinners call upon as their father. Blind
indeed must he be who cannot perceive this,and hardened he
that is not willing to repent.</p>

<p>O dear reader or hearer, if I may pray you, it is my
heartfelt desire of you, that you would always consider (and
regulate yourself accordingly), that men shall give an account
of every idle word they have spoken; how much more then of their deeds. And everyone
shall receive the things done in his body, according to that he
hath done, whether it be good or bad; namely, before the
righteous judgment of God, where anger, hatred, envy, yea, not
loving in deed and in truth, speaking scornfully or spitefully
to one's brother, Raca, thou fool, or offending him, will be
deemed and judged murder, worthy of the council, of judgment,
and of hell fire. Matthew 5:22; I John 3. In like manner,
disobedience will be regarded as witchcraft; to look upon a
woman to lust after her, as adultery; and any other evil which
is desired with the heart, and consented to with the will
(though the power for, and the commission of it be wanting),
will be judged and punished as an accomplished evil work. I
Sam. 15:23; Matt. 5:28; Not to keep His Word, will be
considered lying and perjury, and a good oath, so called, will
be as severely recompensed as a bad oath; for Christ has
prohibited all swearing; Matt. 5, as also to hate one's
enemies, and not to love them like one's friends; and many like
things. Now mark how adultery was punished under the law by the
judges; for those who committed adultery were. stoned to death.
Lev. 20:10. And it is dally seen, how witchcraft, homicide or
murder are punished by the secular lords with fire or the sword
unto death. Mark, how Adam, for one sin, likewise Cain, then
the whole world, with the flood, Sodom and Gomorrah, and the
adjacent cities, with fire and brimstone, Egypt, and afterwards
the idolaters in Israel and murmurers against Moses, were
punished according to the justice of God, for our example. Of
how much sorer punishment then are they worthy who murmur
against Christ, change His truth into lies, and do not receive
His grace and redemption by faith, unto the amendment of their
life, but reject the same, living presumptuously in their sins.
Heb. 10:29; Rom. 1:25. God who did not spare the angels who had
sinned, will also not spare those who through unbelief are
unrighteous and false Christians, but punish them with a sorer
punishment than Sodom and Gomorrah, which were turned into
ashes and condemned and overthrown for an example unto all them
that commit ungodliness, and do not. repent. II Pet. 2:4,6;
Jude 6; Matt. 11:24; II Pet. 3.</p>

<p>If then we are to be saved, through God's mercy, we must
repent, must be obedient children of God, born again of Him,
and must follow Christ in the regeneration and the footsteps of
faith, through the narrow way unto eternal life; nor are we
then saved through the merit of good works, but by the grace
which came through Christ. Eph. 2:5. For though we lived holy;
blameless, and perfect in all righteousness (as the Scriptures
require), and suffered for the truth a death more bitter than
that of Christ which with us men is impossible, yet we could
not be saved through our own good works, but only by God's
mercy, and the grace of our Lord Jesus Christ, who alone has
wrought out our salvation. And if we sought or placed our
salvation in our</p>

</div><div id="732"> 

<p>good works or our sufferings, we should commit idolatry, and
we were our own idol, if we trusted in ourselves. But now our
salvation depends only on the mercy of God, and not on our
running and following after. Rom. 9:16. Though we should run
and follow after ever so well (which is our bounden duty), so
that we attained, and already had, the perfection (that for
which we are apprehended of Christ), and had done all those
things which are commanded us, and which it is our duty to do,
we were yet only unprofitable servants. Phil. 3:12; Luke 17:10.
How much more unprofitable then are we now, with our many
defects, though we willingly strive after and should gladly
perform that which is good, and are sorry that we are not
perfect.* Hence we have great reason, and are in duty bound, to
humble ourselves very low under the abundant grace of God, and
to pray; for eternal life is a gift of God, and not a debt or
reward proceeding from our labor, merit, or good works; for we
are God's workmanship, created in Christ Jesus, unto good
works, which God hath before prepared that we should walk in
them (Ephesians 2:10), as is our duty to do, in the least as
well as in the greatest. But the wages of sin is death; hence
we must hate and fear sin, that we do not consent to or commit
it, if we want to be saved by the grace and gift of God. Thus,
we are delivered through Christ from the bonds of the devil, or
sin; let therefore no one say or hope that he is saved by his
good works, which are far too insufficient. That, also, no one
say: 'Should we not take thought, should we not gain a
livelihood, else on what should we live? except to them who say
that one is not to support himself by the labor of his hands,
but to go idle.' Matt. 6:25; Luke 12:22; Eph. 4:28. And that,
also, no one say: 'No man knows the hour and the day of the
Lord, except to those who have set the hour and the day, from
doing which may the Lord keep me.' Mark 13:32; Matt. 24:42;
Luke 12:40. Beware of frivolous babblers, for scorners will
speedily come to an end. I Cor. 15:33. And if, when you speak
your mind, or reprove with meekness that which does not meet
your approbation and one resist you in the good, be silent
instantly, Ithat you may retain your peace and the tranquility
of your conscience. If it vex you, do nevertheless not engage
in contention, that you may be found in peace when the Lord
comes. II Pet. 3:14. We must here at any rate suffer violence
and wrong; but it will not last long; hence, let us possess our
souls in patience. Luke 21:19.</p>

<p>The fourteenth week of my imprisonment, the first day of
January, so called, A. D. 1568. I trust that the present year
will not pass like the former. Watch and pray, for you know
neither the day nor hour; but the God-fearing may consider
whether this is the year in which the Lord will deliver His
elect and believers; let everyone take warning."</p>

<p>* That no one say, "We cannot be perfect; except to those who
say that they are perfect. There is nothing so good as that men
will not contradict it, even with the Scriptures."</p>

<br />

<h1>JAN THIELEMANS AND JOB JANS, BURNT TO DEATH FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, IN THE HAGUE, IN HOLLAND, IN THE YEAR 1568</h1> 

<p>Hands were now laid in the Hague, on the beloved friends of
the Lord, so that they did not hesitate to deprive them of
their lives with flaming fire.</p>

<p>This became apparent in the case of two very pious and
God-fearing men, one of whom was named Jan Thielemans, the
other job Jans. To both of them, at that place, because they
faithfully adhered to the Lord their God, and could by no
torture be moved from the steadfastness of their faith, their
sentence of death was read in court, namely, that, in pursuance
with the decrees of the Emperor, and the King of Spain (who
called himself Count of Holland), they should be put to death
with fire as heretics; which was executed on the 18th of
December, A. D. 1568, on both of them, after they had committed
their souls into the hands of God.</p>

<h2>Further observation, concerning the death
sentences of the aforementioned martyrs</h2> 

<p>We have this year, 1659, on this occasion, through some of
our friends in the Hague, requested by way of authenticated
copy, the use of the proceedings of the court, from the
criminal records of the year 1568, but especially of the death
sentences of the aforementioned martyrs (as recorded by the
papists), which, as appears, are still extant in the original;
but as A. D. 1648 peace was made with Spain, with condition of
forgiving each other all previous wrongs, and consequently, to
mention them no more, the actuary was afraid to make out a copy
of these particulars, as well as concerning others of our
fellow believers that were put to death during the papistical
reign, fearing it might tend to their reproach, and prove
detrimental to the peace concluded.</p>

<p>This aim of the actuary was not bad, since it springs from
carefulness in regard to a matter of great importance; but in
the meantime these holy martyrs must suffer abridgement, since
their matters, which otherwise necessarily (even out of the
mouth of their adversaries, might be made known to every one),
must thereby remain hid. This by way of notice.</p>

<h2>The first letter which Jan Thielemans wrote
in prison</h2> 

<p>I wish you, my dear friends, grace and peace from God the
heavenly Father, through Jesus Christ His dear Son our Lord, as
a friendly greeting. Amen.</p>

<p>Further, after all good and proper greetings that are
Christian-like, I, in my unworthiness, have felt greatly
prompted in my spirit, to write you something yet, since I
cannot orally converse with you all; seeing I had laid the
first foundation in some of you (I Cor. 3:10), and, according
to my humble</p>

</div><div id="733"> 

<p>gift, withheld nothing from you, and though I am now removed
from you, I have nevertheless, because of the great love which
we in great fellowship and peace have mutually had, remembered
you in my last adieu with a little draught out of my rivulet,
from which I have poured out for you; yet not I, but the grace
of God through me. For thus it is written,. Gen. 17, that God
spake to our father Abraham, saying, "I am the Almighty God;
walk before me, and be thou perfect. And I will make my
covenant between me, and thee, and wi11 multiply thee
accordingly, so that kings shall come out of thee. And I will
give unto thy seed the land of Canaan for an inheritance. And
this is my covenant which I will make with you: Every man-child
ye shall circumcise." Thus Abraham believed God, and it was
imputed unto him for righteousness</p>

<p>and he was called the Friend of God: James 2:23. So God then
gave Abraham a son; who was called Isaac; and Isaac begat Jacob
and Jacob begat the twelve patriarchs. And the patriarchs
envied Joseph, and sold him to the Ishmaelites for twenty
pieces of silver. The Ishmaelites sold him into Egypt; but God
was with him, and he found favor in the sight of king Pharaoh,
and became governor over the land of Egypt. And it happened
that there came a dearth over Egypt, so that Jacob and his sons
found no sustenance. And they heard that corn was sold in
Egypt. Hence Jacob sent out his sons the first time; and the
second time Joseph was made known to his brethren; and Joseph's
kindred was made known unto Pharaoh. And Joseph sent for his
father Jacob. And Jacob went down into Egypt, and with him
threescore and fifteen souls; and he dwelt in Egypt, and he and
his sons died there. Acts 7:4, etc.</p>

<p>Now when the people began to multiply, there arose another
king, who oppressed the people of Israel, and commanded that
the young children should be cast away. Mark well, my good
friends, how did the children of Israel get into this distress,
great misery and sorrow, on account of which they lamented and
groaned to God? who had brought them into this? It was their
father Jacob that had done it; yet with God Almighty the
promise remained as firm as ever, which He had made to our
father Abraham, namely, that his seed should inherit the land
of Canaan; but now they were in great affliction. Now, what did
all. those inherit that were born there? the good and faithful
land of promise? No, but they inherited bondage under the cruel
King Pharaoh, and still found themselves in the land of Egypt;
this is certainly the truth.</p>

<p>Consider now this age of the world, and those who are at the
present day born unto the world; if they ascertain it from the
Scriptures, who brought them into the world? Adam their father.
So they now still find themselves in the spiritual dark Egypt,
under Pharaoh, the devil. Mark now, my good friends, what they
inherit, and how they boast in vain. They, inherit a naked
body when they are born, without raiment and food; for if hey
inherited raiment and food, there would not so many people go
naked and suffer.hunger. But now excellent and thankworthy
gifts are proffered by the Lord. But if we will not use these
excellent means according to the rule and truth of Christ, in
order to get to the spiritual promised land, we must remain
without; even as there are many who do not use the means for
obtaining food and clothing, and must therefore go without
them, suffer cold and hunger: thus, my good friends, it will
also go with all those who here vainly boast of the kingdom of
God.</p>

<p>I will now return to my previous theme. Consider now Israel,
who were dwelling in Egypt; they began greatly to multiply, and
wax mighty, and numbered six hundred thousand men. This great
power was nevertheless beaten and compelled to labor by King
Pharaoh. They groaned and complained, and though there was such
a great multitude of them, yet it was not possible for them to
get out of the country, and enter into the land of which they
were to be heirs, as God had promised Abraham. Thus, also, my
friends, it is impossible for man to, get out of spiritual
Egypt, and to be delivered from. King Pharaoh, namely, the
devil, in order to enter into the spiritual country, namely,
the kingdom of God; for men universally inherit a
depraved.nature, and in accordance with it they act, and live
after the flesh, wherefore they die, and do not inherit the
kingdom of God. Now, my dear friends, when they were thus in
Egypt, and had dwelt there four hundred and thirty years, and
complained, groaned and sighed, it came before the Lord. And
the Lord God Almighty remembered Ibis covenant which He had
firmly made with our Father Abraham, and God raised up and
chose a man named Moses. Behold, my good friends, through this
man God intended to deliver all the people, and He did many
wonderful signs and mighty works before the king of Egypt, as
we may read. Finally this Moses brought them out by the mighty
hand of God; but before they left the country, Moses went many
times to Pharaoh and said, "Thus saith the Lord God of Israel, Let my people go, that
they may serve me." But Pharaoh said, "Who is the Lord, that I should let the people go? I will
not let the people go." Now, even as the people that were in
Egypt could not serve the Lord, unless they left Egypt and
journeyed towards the promised land, so can now those likewise
riot serve the Lord, who are in the spiritual Egypt; for one
cannot serve two masters at once; one must leave Pharaoh and
Egypt; for Pharaoh dwells in Egypt, but the Lord God dwells in
the spiritual promised land. My kind friends can now easily
perceive that it is the truth what I write, that one must leave
the spiritual Egypt, even as Moses by the mighty hand of God
delivered the people out of Egypt, from which they went out in
one day, and came to the sea, whither Pharaoh with his servants
pursued them, thinking that they could not escape out of the
country. But little did they know that</p>

</div><div id="734"> 

<p>the Lord was with the children of Israel; for Pharaoh
thought to smite them. But the Lord divided the sea, so that
the waters stood like walls. And thus Moses and the people of
God passed through, but Pharaoh with all his servants remained
in the sea, so that not one of them escaped to go and tell the
tale in Egypt. Thus also, my dearest, when men want to serve
God, then they forsake Egypt and Pharaoh, and when Pharaoh sees
this, he bestirs him with his servants. But the spiritual Moses
has gone before his people, and helps them through the sea,
namely, through the wilderness of this world, and Pharaoh and
his servants diligently pursue to the end, which is death.</p>

<p>Furthermore, my friends, when Moses had now succeeded in
bringing them across the sea, they saw their pursuers drown
before their eyes. Then they rejoiced greatly, and with songs
thanked God, who had so mightily helped them. They were,
however, not yet in the promised land, but on the way to the
same. And Moses their leader went before them, and brought them
to Mount Sinai; and he, the faithful servant of the Lord, went
up into the mount and there received the law of the Lord, which
was written with the finger of God in two tables of stone. When
Moses had received these two tables of stone from the hand of
the Lord, to lay them before the people, that they should do
according to them, for now the service of the Lord commenced;
and as yet they had received no ordinance from God, save
circumcision; hence, if they were now to serve God, they must
also have the commandments, the Lord said to Moses, "Go, get
thee down from the mount; for the people have corrupted
themselves." Ex. 32:7. Now when Moses went down from the mount,
and saw the people dancing around the calf, rejoicing in the
work of their hands, he cast down the two tables of stone and
brake them beneath the mount, and with a grieved heart
addressed Aaron, saying, "What hast thou done, that thou hast brought this people to
so great a sin?" Aaron excused himself before Moses, and
said, "My lord, thou knowest that this people is a stiffnecked
people. They fell upon me and I demanded of them their golden
earrings, and other gold; and I received it from their hands,
and fashioned it with a graving tool, and hence this calf
came." Moses took the calf, and ground it to powder, and
strewed it upon the water, and made the children of Israel
drink of it. And Moses addressed the Levites, and said to
them, "Put every man his sword by his side, and go in and out from
gate to gate throughout the camp, and slay every man his
brother, and every man his companion, and every man his
neighbor." And there fell three thousand men. Behold now, my
dear kind friends, these three thousand had left Egypt and
Pharaoh, and were gone out of it, in order that they should
possess the goodly land; now if they had boasted themselves of
the goodly land (promised by God to Abraham and his seed),
would it not have been vain boasting? Certainly.</p>

<p>And Korah, Dathan and Abiram, with two hundred and fifty
others, who offered incense before the Lord, perished from the
multitude, together with fourteen thousand and seven hundred
that murmured against Moses, and said, "Ye have killed the.
people of the Lord." Num. 16.</p>

<p>See, my good friends, they claimed to be the people of God,
though they were not it; and again, Moses the faithful servant
of the Lord was said to have done it, though it was not he, but
their own sins that did it. And if the truth had been told, it
would also have been so said; but the truth is also now at the
present day often perverted, and things are asserted to be true
when they are not. Again, if the twenty-four thousand
whoremongers (Numbers 25:1), together with three thousand more
and many others, who all perished in the wilderness because of
their sins and transgressions, had all greatly boasted
themselves of the goodly land, would this not have been vain
boasting? Certainly. Hence, it is vain to boast of one's self;
but to boast according to the truth is right. For Moses said to
them, "Hear, O Israel: Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all
thine heart, and with all thy might. These words which I
command thee this day, shall be in thine heart: and thou shalt
write them upon the posts of thy doors; talk of them when thou
walkest by the way with thy children; and let them be for a
memorial in thine hand." Deut. 6:4, etc. Thus Moses strictly
exhorted the people, and most diligently presented the law of
the Lord to them; and the people said, "Yea, but did not do
it."</p>

<p>Hence, my good friends, take heed, lest there be in any of
you an evil heart of unbelief [in departing from the living
God]. But exhort one another daily while it is called today;
lest any of you be hardened through the deceitfulness of sin.
For ye are made partakers of Christ, if ye hold the beginning
of your confidence steadfast unto the end. Therefore, today if
ye will hear His voice, harden not your hearts, as in the
provocation, when He was grieved forty years with that
generation, and sware in His wrath, that they should not enter
into His rest. Heb. 3. Therefore, my good friends, let us give
the more earnest heed to the things which we have heard, lest
at any time we should let them slip. For if the word spoken by
angels was steadfast, and every transgression and disobedience
received a just recompense of reward; how shall we escape, if
we neglect so great salvation? 2:1-3. Let us therefore fear the
Lord, that we may enter into His rest, and that none of us
remain without. For unto us was the Gospel preached, as well as
unto them: but the word preached did not profit them, not being
mixed with faith in them. 4:1, 2. Thus, my good friends, it
does not profit to hear the word of God, if it is not mixed
with faith; for unto them that believe, as the Scripture says,
the kingdom of God is promised by the mouth of Jesus. Hence let
us not neglect the grace of God, who says, "I have heard thee in
a time accepted, and in the day of salvation have I succored
thee: behold,</p>

</div><div id="735"> 

<p>now is the accepted time; behold, now is the day of
salvation"-which is neglected by many. Hebrews 12:15; II Cor.
6:1, 2.</p>

<p>Therefore let us in all things approve ourselves as the
ministers of God, serving Him all the days of our lives in
holiness and righteousness, which are acceptable before Him.
Hence I say with Paul, "Lift up the hands which hang down, and the feeble knees;
that ye stumble not, as do the lame; but make straight paths
for your feet; for I fear that there are now many lame, and
many hands which hang down. Therefore follow peace and
holiness, without which no man shall see the Lord. Hebrews
12:12, 13. I beseech you therefore, my good friends, by the
mercies of God, that ye present your bodies a living sacrifice,
holy, acceptable unto God, which is your reasonable service.
And be not conformed to this world: but be ye transformed by
the renewing of your mind, that ye may prove what is that good,
and acceptable, and perfect will of God. Rom. 12:1, 2. Hence,
remember the words which were formerly spoken to you in the
name of the Lord, "Therefore abide in that which you have heard
from the beginning. If you abide in that which you have heard
from the beginning, you shall continue in the Father and in the
Son. And this is his promise, even eternal life." I John 2: 24,
25. For we have a sure word of prophecy, whereunto ye do well
that ye take heed, as unto a light that shineth in a dark
place, until the daystar arise in your hearts. II Pet.
1:19.</p>

<p>My dear friends, what a dark place it was formerly with you,
when the light was hid from you; and what dark places there are
still; but you have obtained mercy. Hence Jesus Christ says in
the Gospel, "I am come a light into the world, that whosover
believeth on me should not abide in darkness. And if any man
hear my words, and believe not, I judge him not: for I came not
to judge the world, but to save the world. He that rejecteth
me, and receiveth not my words, hath one that judgeth him: the
word that I have spoken, the same shall judge him in the last
day. For I have not spoken of myself; but the Father which sent
me, he gave me a commandment, what I should say, and what I
should speak. And I know that his commandment is life
everlasting." Jno. 12:4650.</p>

<p>Hence it is our concern that we through the cordial grace of
our Lord Jesus Christ may receive the same at His hand; for the
Lord also is concerned to have a.people that fear and love Him.
And this is the love of God, that we keep His commandments; and
His commandments are not grievous, to them that love Him. I
John 5:3. Therefore, the law of commandments is good, and will
abide forever; he that receives it, shall obtain life; but he
that receives it not shall obtain death.</p>

<p>Hence, my friends, be mindful of the Lord our God all your
days, and let not your will be set to sin, or to transgress the
commandments of the Lord our God (Tob. 4:5); for He has
commanded the people to come, charging them, when they came,
what they should do, that they might live; and what they should
observe, that they might not be tormented. But they have
rejected His laws; therefore they shall also be in great
misery, who have abused His ways. Though He gave them an
appointed time, they understood it not, to show repentance; and
must therefore know it after death in torment. II Esd. 9:9.
For, for this cause was the gospel' preached also to them that
are dead, that they might be judged according to men in the
flesh, but live according to God in the spirit. I Pet. 4:6.
Therefore, the hour is now come, that the dead shall hear the
voice of the Son of God</p>

<p>and they that hear shall live. And there shall an hour come,
when the dead that are in the grave shall hear the voice of the
Son of God, and they that have done good shall rise unto life
eternal; and they that have done evil shall rise also, however,
not unto life, but unto damnation. John 5: 25, etc. Hence, my
good friends, look to yourselves, that you lose not those
things which you have wrought, but that you may receive a full
reward. For whosoever transgresseth, and abideth not in the
doctrine of Christ, hath not God. But he that abideth in the
doctrine of Christ, he hath both the Father and the Son. II
John 8, 9."Ye are of God, little children, [and have overcome
them:] because greater is he that is in you, than he that is in
the world. They are of the world: therefore speak they of the
world, and the world heareth them. We are of God; he that
knoweth God heareth us; he that is not of God heareth not us."
I John 4: 4-6.</p>

<p>Thus, my good friends, I have written you a little, and now
begin to draw to a close with my letter; for we have little
time for writing, since there are so many people coming and
going. Openly I dare not write; so that I sometimes can
scarcely write a line in solitude. Hence excuse me, in case
there be any blunders. Thus, my dear friends, I have written
you a little, because I felt prompted in my mind to do this,
and could find no rest.</p>

<p>Herewith I will commend you to the Lord, and to the Word of
His grace, which is able to build you up, and to give you an
inheritance among all them which are sanctified. And remember
me, your poor unworthy brother, in your prayers, that I may
finish this to the praise of the Lord, and to your
confirmation; so that my soul may find rest with the Lord; for
I, in my insignificance and unworthiness, do not forget you
here, where I also entreat the Lord. Furthermore, I greet you
all especially much with the salutation of our dear Lord Jesus
Christ when He, having been removed by wicked men from His
disciples, for a little while, returned to them (as they sat
with doors closed) and said, "Peace be unto you all." John
20:19. Thus I also say: Have peace with one another, and the
Lord will be with you. II Cor. 13:11.</p>

</div><div id="736"> 

<h2>ANOTHER LETTER WHICH JAN THIELEMANS WROTE FROM PRISON.</h2> 

<p>I wish you, my much beloved brethren and sisters in the
Lord, and all those who shall see my letters, or hear them
read, the grace of our Lord Jesus Christ and the communion of
the Holy Ghost, for a friendly and worthy greeting. Accept it
in love. Amen.</p>

<p>After good and proper greetings, I undertake to write a
little to you, my beloved, dear friends. I beseech you all by
the mercies of our dear Lord Jesus Christ, that you would all
diligently take heed to yourselves* In all love, peace and
truth, according to the words of the Gospel, while, dear
children, you still have time from. the Lord, through His great
love shown you; since the time is so precious, for when it is
past, and one has not taken good heed, it is lamented with
sorrow. Hence Paul says, "Let us take heed to ourselves to provoke to love in good
works." Therefore let us be the least, meanest, and lowliest,
to bear all that is consistent with love and truth. For thus
said Christ Jesus, the eternal truth, Himself; when the
disciples asked who should be the greatest among them, He took
a child, and set it In the midst:of them, and said, "Except ye
become as little children, ye shall not enter into the
kingdomof heaven." Matt. 18:3. Hence we may well perceive from
the words of Christ, that we are to be, and must be, a prepared
people; or we are not what we think ourselves to be, or, for
what people take us.</p>

<p>Hence, my much beloved friends, we must approve ourselves in
all things as the ministers of God. Now, no more is required in
them, than that they be found faithful; for God is not
unrighteous to forget your love, and your good and kind works.
I Cor. 4:1, 2; Heb. 6:10. Therefore be steadfast, and immovable
in the work of the Lord, always knowing that your labor is not
in vain in the Lord;</p>

<p>hoping by the grace of our Lord Jesus Christ, that it will
yet be most richly rewarded to you, when He will say, "Come, ye
blessed, inherit the kingdom of my Father." I Cor. 15:58; Matt.
25:34. Then shall the righteous shine forth as the sun in the
kingdom of their Father. Matt. 13:43. Then shall it be seen
what difference there shall be .between the righteous and the
wicked, and between, them that have served God, and them that
have not served Him. Mal. 3:18.</p>

<p>Therefore, my greatly beloved in the Lord, take diligent
heed to yourselves. Rather- suffer from another-even though it
should be one friend from another-than that another should
suffer from you. Rather bear from another-even though it should
be a friend-if it be consistent with the truth, than that a
friend should suffer from you. Hence it is written, "If thou
come to serve the Lord, prepare thy soul for temptation." Sir.
2:1. For it will come very convenient even if one has put
himself in the lowest place.</p>

<p>Hence, beloved friends in the Lord, abide in that which you
have heard from-the beginning. If you abide in it, you shall
continue in the Father, and in the Son. And this is His
promise, even eternal life. I John 2:24, 25. What do we care
for the world, or for what there is in it; for the world shall
pass away, and the lust thereof; but he that doeth the will of
God abideth forever. And it is certainly our, chief concern to
be saved; as Peter says, Acts 15:11, "We believe that through
the grace of the Lord Jesus Christ we shall be saved." Even as
he says also in another place, "I have briefly written to you,
by our brother Silvanus, namely, that this is the grace of God
wherein ye now stand. Therefore hold that fast which you have,
that no man take your crown." Rev. 3:11. If you overcome, you
shall inherit all things. Hence add to your faith, virtue; to
virtue, knowledge; to knowledge, temperance; to temperance,
patience; to patience, godliness; to godliness, brotherly
kindness; to brotherly kindness, charity. For if these things
be in you, and abound, they make you that ye shall neither be
barren nor unfruitful in the knowledge of our Lord Jesus
Christ. But he that lacketh these things is blind, and cannot
see afar off, and hath forgotten that he was purged from his
old sins.</p>

<p>Wherefore the rather, brethren, give diligence to make your
calling and election sure: for if ye do these things, ye shall
never fall; for so an entrance shall, be ministered unto you
abundantly into the everlasting kingdom of our Lord and Saviour
Jesus Christ. II Pet. 1:5-11. Having therefore such great and
glorious promises, dearly beloved, let its cleanse ourselves
from all filthiness of the flesh and spirit, perfecting
holiness. II Cor. 7:1. As .John also testifies, saying, "Let us
purify ourselves from sin, even as he is pure. For whosoever
comrriitteth sin doeth wrong; for sin is wrong. Therefore came
he into the world, that he might take away sin; for in him is
no sin. Whosoever siiineth hath not seen him, neither known
him." I John 3:3-6. The same John further testifies, and
says, "Ye are of God, little children, [and have overcome them:]
because greater is he that is in you, than he that is in the
world. They are of the world: therefore speak they of the
world, and the world heareth them. We are of God: he that
knoweth God heareth us; but he that knoweth not God heareth not
us. Hereby know we the spirit of truth, and the spirit of
error." I John 4:4-6. With this Christ agrees, saying, "The
world cannot hate you; but me it hateth, because I testify of
it, that, the works thereof are evil." John 7:7. As He further
says in another place, "Father, keep through thine own name
those whom thou bast given me: thine they were, and thou gayest
them me. Not, Father, that thou shouldst take them out of the
world, but that thou shouldst keep</p>

<p>* The reader will observe that this rendering of the
passage, alluded to here (Heb. 10:24), does not fully coincide
with the one found in the English version of the Bible; which
may be attributed either to the authors having used an
imperfect translation, or, to an error on his part, in quoting
said passage from memory.-Trans.</p>

<p class="c8">** See preceding foot note.</p>

</div><div id="737"> 

<p>them from the evil." John 17:11. In another place Christ
says, "Every one that doeth evil hateth the light, neither
cometh to the light, lest his deeds should be reproved."
3:20.</p>

<p>Thus, my much beloved friends, while we are yet in this sad
world, and the Lord still grants us time, we must take most
diligent heed to the word of the Lord, and do our very best to
follow the same; for thus Paul teaches us, saying, "As many as
walk according to this rule, peace be on them, and mercy." Gal.
6:16. For thus we read in another place, "This people doth not
understand, neither lay they to heart, that the grace and mercy
of God are over his chosen and over his saints;" even as Moses
says, that His mercy is shown to thousands of them that love
Him, and keep His commandments. Ex. 20:6. True, there are many
in the world, who say that they love the Lord; but they do not
show it by their works, for their works show well enough whom
they love; for Christ says, "He that loveth me will keep my
word, or obey my commandments." These are they who can stand
before Him; for thus also says Christ, "He that hath my
commandments, and keepeth them, he it is that loveth me." John
14:21. But he that does not keep His commandments, does also
not love Him; for John in his epistle declares, "This is the
love of God, that we keep his commandments: and his
commandments are not grievous. For whatsoever is born of God
overcometh the world: and this is the victory that overcometh
the world, even our faith. Who is he that overcometh . the
world, but he that believeth that Jesus Christ is the Son of
God." I John 5:3-5. Therefore"love not the world, neither the
things that are in the world. If any man love the world, the
love of the Father is not in him. For all that is in the world,
namely, the lust of the flesh, and the lust of the eyes and the
pride of life, is not of the Father, but is of the world. And
the world passeth .away, and the lust thereof: but he that
doeth the will of God abideth forever." I John 2:15-17. Hence,
my much beloved friends, be not conformed to this world: but be
ye transformed by the renewing of your mind, that ye may prove
what is that good and acceptable will of God. Rom. 12:2. Even
as Paul says also in another place, "Grace be to you, and peace,
from God the Father, and from our Lord Jesus Christ, who gave
himself for our sins, that he might deliver us from this
present evil world." Galatians 1:3, 4. Thus, my dear friends,
this grace has been given you, namely, that you have tasted
that the Lord is gracious, to whom you are come as unto a
living stone, which was disallowed of men, but before God was
chosen and precious. Therefore, be ye built up a spiritual
house, and a holy priesthood, to offer up spiritual sacrifices,
acceptable to God through our Lord Jesus Christ; that you may
lift up holy hands to the Lord, without strife and discord (I
Tim. 2:8), and make intercession and give thanks for all men;
and the Lord of peace shall be with you. II Cor. 13:11. But if
God be with you, who shall be against you, who spared not His
own Son, but delivered Him up for us all? Who shall lay
anything to the charge of His elect? It is God that justifieth
them. Who shall condemn them? It is Christ that died and is
risen again, who is even at the right hand of God, and also
maketh intercession for us. Hence Paul says, "Who shall be able
to separate us from the love of God? tribulation, or
persecution, or death," etc. Rom. 8:31.</p>

<p>Thus, my much beloved brethren and sisters in the Lord, I
will shorten my simple letter which I have written in bonds, in
which we daily look for the redemption of our bodies. Hence
receive this letter kindly, and think of what has in times past
proceeded forth from my unworthy lips (not I, but the grace of
God through me, I Cor. 15:10).</p>

<p>Herewith I bid you an eternal, Christian adieu, and expect
you all in the second resurrection, that we may meet Him in the
air, and ever be with the Lord. Comfort one another with these
words. I Thess. 4:17, 18. Once more I bid you adieu, my dear
friends. Herewith I commend you to the Lord, and to the Word of
His grace, which is able to build you up, and to give you an
inheritance among all them which are sanctified. Amen. Acts
20:32.</p>

<p>Written in bonds, by me, JAN THIELEMANS,<br />
Your weak brother in Christ.</p>


<h1>HEYNDRICK ARENTS, A. D. 1568</h1> 

<p>Among many other true believers baptized according to the
command of Christ, who were everywhere persecuted, expelled and
put to death, also one Heyndrick Arents of Briel, about the
year 1568, fell into the hands of these persecutors. The
circumstances that led to his imprisonment were as follows, "A
vessel having cast anchor in the roadstead off Briel on account
of a leak which it had sprung, and said Heyndrick Arents being
a shipcarpenter in Briel, those of the vessel requested him to
calk the craft. While he was thus with them, the lords of
Rotterdam learned that said vessel was a pirate, and sent
thither a detachment of soldiers. These captured the vessel and
conducted said Heyndrick Arents and the pirates to Delft as
prisoners. And as those of -Delft refused to take them in, they
were forthwith taken to Rotterdam, where they, on account of
their misdeeds, were soon sentenced to be hanged. When
Heyndrick Arents perceived this, he asked whether he had come
into a city of justice, or of violence-why they wanted to
condemn the innocent with the guilty? and said that he had not
been apprehended on account of any crime. If they would inquire
concerning him and his faith, they would find it to be so. Sus.
53; Ex. 23:7; I Peter 4:15.</p>

<p>Hearing this, the governor asked, "What does he say? what
sort of a heretic is this? if he is one of the Anabaptists he
shall not be hanged, but burned." Thus, he was examined
concerning his</p>

</div><div id="738"> 

<p>faith, and freely confessed that he had been baptized upon
his faith, according to the command of Christ; and, on the
other hand, rejected usurping infant baptism and all papal
errors, but confessed the ordinances of Christ and His apostles
(which were observed by him and his fellow believers).
Thereupon they sentenced him, and, after an imprisonment of two
weeks, he was burnt at said place, in great constancy, and
confirming the faith of the truth with his death and blood.</p>

<h2>CLAUDINE LE VETTRE, AND WITH HER A BROTHER, A. D. 1568</h2> 

<p>Meenen is a beautiful little town in Flanders, three leagues
from Rijssel, on the road to Bruges, built on the edge of the
Leye. In this town there lived a God-fearing man, Piersom des
Muliers, with his wife Claudine le Vettre, who through the
preaching of Leenaert Bouwens, and by reading and studying the
Word of God, were turned from papal idolatry. Learning of this,
Titelmannus, Dean of Ronse, and inquisitor of the faith, came
thither with bailiffs, thinking to apprehend the aforesaid
Piersom in his house. But a pious man of the council of Meenen
had-warned Piersom to flee from the inquisitor, which he did,
betaking himself into a certain piece of woods not far from his
house. But his wife Claudine being engaged with her four little
children (one of whom is still living), tarried a little too
long, and had just left the house, with a child on the arm,
when the bailiffs entered, who tumultuously asked the children
and the neighbors where the husband was; and when they could
not learn it they prepared to leave. Perceiving this, one of
the neighbors, kindled with an evil and perverse zeal,
said, "Men, there goes the wife with a child on her arm." They
therefore forthwith caught her, and delivered her into the
hands of the aforesaid inquisitor. This happened in the year
1567, a few months before the Duke of Alva's arrival in the
Netherlands. She was taken from Meenen to Ypres, where many lay
in prison for the faith that is because they could not
understand that there was another Mediator and Saviour than
Jesus Christ alone, who was offered up for our sins on the tree
of the cross (I Tim. 2:5; Rom. 4:25); and could not believe
that God had any pleasure in images of wood and stone, or
silver and gold, but believed rather that such worship was
prohibited in the Word of God (Ex. 20:4; Deuteronomy 4:16). And
because they also did not believe that dead men can hear our
prayers and help us; but much rather that we are to call upon
no one but God alone, who alone is the discerner of our hearts
and thoughts, and knows what we shall pray,for, even before we
have poured out our prayer; who exclaimed with a loud voice, "Come unto me, all ye that labor and are heavy laden, and I
will give you rest," etc.;"to whom all the prophets and
apostles point us, and not to one of the departed saints."
Matt. 4:10; Rev. 2:13; Heb. 4:12; Matt. 6:8; Rom. 8:26; Matt.
11:28; Acts 10:43; 4:12; Jeremiah 23:5; 33:15.</p>

<p>All who held such faith were by Titelmannus declared
heretics, and delivered to the secular authorities, to be dealt
with according to the decrees, namely, the men to be burnt
alive, and the women to be buried alive. This severe death
greatly terrified some, so that many apostatized, in order to
save their lives. For at one time a large number broke out of
prison and escaped, so that Claudine also could have made her
escape, but she would not leave her child; so also a pious
brother, who remained with her in prison unto the end, and
would not leave her, dying with her for the truth, at said
place. But Claudine did not apostatize, notwithstanding
manifold assaults, continuing one year, but remained steadfast
in the faith, refuting, from the word of God, all that the
priests and monks were able to bring forward against her, as
appeared from divers letters which she wrote to her husband
from prison.* Finally, when they could not prevail upon her,
they endeavored to move her by her maternal love for her
infant, which hitherto had been nourished at its mother's
breast in prison. The child therefore was taken from her and
put out to a wet nurse, which was the greatest affliction she
suffered during her imprisonment, and on account of which she
wept many a tear, constantly praying God for power and strength
against such temptation and assault of the flesh, in order that
she might not fall, even as many of her fellow believers fell
in her presence. God Almighty heard her prayer, for the Duke of
Alva, having in the meantime entered the country, and commanded
to clear all prisons from heretics, she also was crowned with
the crown of the godly, without Ypres, A. D. 1568; and with her
a brother, who was also burnt for the truth, at said place.</p>

<p>Her husband, Piersom, often said of his aforesaid wife that
it was astonishing how well she was versed in the Scriptures.
For whenever he could not find a passage, he would ask his wife
Claudine, who would at once clearly indicate to him what he
sought. t</p>

<p>It is understood that the child which was taken from her in
prison was from that time on seen no more, without the father
and the friends ever knowing what became of it.</p>

<p>Piersom had formerly lived with his wife Claudine, in
Bruges, where the same thing had happened to him, namely, that
he with his wife escaped from the inquisitor, through the
friendly warning of a councilor of the city. However he had to
leave beh'nd everything he had, as was also the case at Meenen.
But the pious man of Meenen who had warned him, concealed
Piersom's books and part of his household goods, and saw that
they were again taken to the place where the books belonged.
But</p>

<p class="c8">* Respecting said letters it has not been
possible for us to obtain any of them.</p>

<p class="c8">** Piersom was a teacher [minister] of the church
of God called Mennists.</p>

</div><div id="739"> 

<p>the bad neighbor, who had betrayed Claudine, fell into such
detestation with the town's people that he had to leave the
place, after the rabble of the town had demolished and ruined
his shop, calling after him, Judas! Judas, the traitor I</p>

<p>Meenen was at that time an open city, without walls and
gates, and hence Titelmannus did not dare trust his prisoners
there: it would have gone with them as it did in another small
town of 1, landers, where on a set day the peasants came in
great numbers, broke open the prison, and liberated about four
hundred persons who had been imprisoned for the same cause.</p>

<p>The friends had Piersom's children baptized by the pastor of
Meenen, as Margriete, the oldest of the children, who
subsequently died, at the age of sixteen, in Calais, was wont
to relate.</p>

<p>The remainder were three sons, named Pieter, Nicolaes and
Jan, the last mentioned being the infant which was nourished at
the mother's breasts in prison. Pieter died during his mother's
imprisonment.</p>

<p>Piersom subsequently married a woman by the name of Peronne
Hennebo, who died at Leyden, A. D. 1589, leaving two daughters,
Maria and Martha, both born at Hoorn. This Martha was the wife
of Doctor Dirk Volkertsz Velius, who wrote the Chronicles of
Hoorn, and the mother of Pieter Velius of Hoorn.</p>

<p>Piersom's third wife was Habeau de la Motte, mother of
Margriete des Muliers, who resided at Gonda.</p>

<p>Piersom fell asleep in the Lord in Leyden, in the year 1591,
leaving a son by his first wife Claudine, two daughters by his
second wife Peronne, and a daughter by his last wife, as
already said.</p>

<p>Claudine was beautiful of person, and a good singer, so that
she moved the bystanders by her singing. Especially on the last
day of her life, people stood before the prison, to hear her
sing with a joyful heart, when death was announced to her. One
who related it to me had heard her sing with a clear, strong
voice the 27th psalm of David</p>

<p class="c3">Le Seigneur est la clarte qui m'addresse</p>

<p>And the people firmly believed that if they had not gagged
her when they brought her to the place of execution, she would
have departed life singing and praising God.</p>

<p>This account we received from D. N. M., the son of Piersom
and Claudine, by the help of D. D. V., Claudine's
brother-in-law.</p>

<h2>FURTHER ACCOUNT OF THE AFORESAID CLAUDINE LE VETTRE</h2> 

<p>The descendants of Piersom, the husband of Claudine le
Vettre, claimed to have received, by way of tradition, that
this Piersom at the time of the imprisonment of his
afore-mentioned wife betook himself to a miller who lived in or
near his mill, which stood close under the walls of Ypres, in
order to be able there daily to get tidings from his beloved
wife, which, gleaned from street rumors were brought to him by
the miller's wife, as often as she returned from town, though
without knowing that it was his wife, or that he was an
Anabaptist.</p>

<p>She judged Claudine not to be in her right mind because she
had allowed herself to be rebaptized, and let so many
sufferings be inflicted upon her on this account, and would
rather die, than do what the priests said. This every time
pierced Piersom's heart like a dagger, and ofter compelled him
to step aside to give vent to the deep feelings of his
heart.</p>

<p>The day when Claudine was to be offered up, the miller's
wife, desirous of seeing her b Ing executed, asked Piersom
whether he did not wi;h to go along and behold the scene, which
he declined, requesting her kindly to pay strict attention to
everything, in order to give him an account of it afterwards.
When she returned home she related to Piersom how valiantly and
undauntedly Claudine went to death, what she said, and how she
conducted herself; everything, however, with the idea, that
Claudine had not acted rationally. Thereupon Piersom, having
warmed up, took heart and discovered himself to the miller and
his wife, saying that he was of the same belief, and that the
one put to death was his beloved and very rational wife, and
upon what foundations of truth they founded their doctrine and
life. This so deeply affected the miller and his wife, that
they also resolved to amend their life. They were baptized upon
their faith, and shortly after sealed the truth with their
blood.</p>

<h2>PIETER PIETERS BECKJEN, BURNT ALIVE AT AMSTERDAM, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, ON THE 26TH DAY OF FEBRUARY, A. D. 1569</h2> 

<p>The dreadful murdering, burning and killing of the innocent
and upright followers of Jesus Christ were not sufficient at
this time to deter from the true confession and practice of the
Christian faith a certain pious brother and faithful witness of
the Lord, named Pieter Pieters Beckjen, by trade a boatman on
the Amstel, and so zealous, that at divers times he gathered
the little flock of the oppressed pious who lived about
Amsterdam, into his boat, in order to edify one another with
the Word of God, and to strengthen one another in the accepted
faith.</p>

<p>And when it came to pass that his dear wife bore him a
child, he, from Christian carefulness, took said infant with
him to a place where it might be secure from the superstition
of the papists, and from being baptized.</p>

<p>In short, he manifested his zeal in every respect,
notwithstanding the cruelty of the rulers of darkness, and this
with a sincere and good intention, till finally he was, on that
account, denounced to the magistrates of the city of Amsterdam,
apprehended, dreadfully tortured, and, at last, when he
would</p>

</div><div id="740"> not apostatize, sentenced to
death, and burnt alive, as appears from the sentence, which,
for confirmation of said matter, was faithfully and correctly
sent to us from the hands of the secretary there. In it can be
seen, on the one hand, the steadfast confession of this martyr,
and on the other hand, how awfully the rulers of darkness
misinterpreted the same, and construed it to an evil, shameful
and terrible end.<br />
<br />

<h2>SENTENCE OF DEATH OF PIETER PIETERS BECKJEN</h2> 

<p>Whereas Pieter Pieters, alias Beckjen, boatman, prisoner,
unmindful of his soul and salvation, and of the obedience which
he owed to the Lord God, and to his imperial majesty, forsaking
our mother, the holy church, and this from the time that he
attained to understanding, even until now, has re-, fused to go
to the holy, worthy sacrament, despising and disregarding the
same, and has in twenty years been to confession only once,
contrary to the ordinance of our mother, the holy church, and,
moreover, has attended the reprobate and prohibited assemblies,
or conventicles, of the Mennonists, etc., and has himself, in
his own boat, twice held conventicles of the aforesaid
Mennonists, in which abominable and reprobated sect he so
obstinately persists, that still recently before his
apprehension, his wife lying in childbed, he took said child
and conveyed it away, not willing to tolerate or permit that
said child should be baptized according to the ceremonies of
the ancient Roman Catholic and Apostolical church; in which he
is still captive, persisting therein, and not willing to return
to our mother, the holy church, notwithstanding he has at
divers times, by various ecclesiastical persons, and also by
the aldermen of this city, been admonished and urged to return
and to leave this accursed sect,-all of which are crimes
against the divine and the secular majesty, as said before,
which disturb the peace and the common weal, and which ought
therefore, for an example to others, not to go unpunished;
therefore, my lords of the court, having seen the demand of my
lord the bailiff, also his information, the confession of the
prisoner, together with the poor defense of said prisoner, and
having duly considered all, have condemned the aforesaid
prisoner, as they by these presents do condemn him, to be
executed with fire, according to the decrees of his majesty;
and declare his entire property confiscated for the benefit of
his majesty aforesaid, without prejudice to the privileges and
all other interests of this city.</p>

<p>Done in court this 26th of February, A. D. 1569,</p>

</div><div id="741"> 

<p>in the presence of all the judges, by the advice of all the
burgomasters.</p>

<p class="c8">How said person was condemned to the rack,
and</p>

<p class="c8">when this happened</p>

<p>He was condemned to the torture, the 17th of January, A. D.
1569, and examined and threatened with torture on the same day,
and in the same place, as appears from the records of the
confession.</p>

<p>Thus extracted from the book of criminal sentences,
preserved in the archives of the city of Amsterdam.</p>

<p>N. N.</p>

<h2>LAUWERENS VERKAMER, A. D. 1569</h2> 

<p>In the year 1569 there was apprehended in 's Hertogenbosch,
in Brabant, a pious follower of Christ, named Lauwerens
Verkamer, for the single reason that he could not follow the
Romish priests and monks in their self-invented idolatry, but
separated therefrom, and united with the true members of our
Lord Jesus, seeking to observe and practice with them in true
obedience, His holy commandments. For this reason he was
persecuted in a very hostile manner by the <i>papistical</i>
and <i>anti-Christminded, so</i> that he, with many others, in
the beginning of January, left Antwerp, with the intention of
taking up residence at Nimeguen. But though the rest went to
Holland, he, while on the journey to Nimeguen, was apprehended
by the sheriff of 's Hertogenbosch, and brought to that place a
prisoner on the 5th of January, and suffered very severe and
tyrannical imprisonment, none of his good friends being allowed
to visit him, nor might he indicate by letter his distress and
severe imprisonment to any one-thus unmercifully and
malignantly was he kept. For as he was a man of distinguished
family and large means, and had with him many books of his
temporal affairs, these bloodthirsty men could ascertain his
circumstances, which tended to aggravate his situation. But his
firm unwavering steadfastness in the true saving faith was
manifested in him; for in the year 1569, about the end of June,
he was burnt by the enemies of the truth, in great constancy,
and sealed the faith of the eternal truth with his death and
blood, and put off this mortal clothing of the flesh in true
obedience, for which, at the last day, he shall be clothed by
the true Bridegroom Christ Jesus with the immortal clothing,
and be rewarded with the crown of eternal glory. II Esd. 2:45;
I Cor. 15:58; 11 Tim. 4:8.</p>

<h2>SIJNTGEN VERCOILGEN, A. D. 1569</h2> 

<p>As in the time of Ishmael and Isaac, he that was born after
the flesh persecuted him that was born after the Spirit (Gal.
4:29), so it still goes in these latter days. For the ministers
of the Roman antichrist imprisoned at Kortrijck, in Flanders, a
Godfearing lamb of Christ named Sijntgen Vercoilgen, the mother
of Jan Vercoilgen, and after many temptations, she was put to
death at said place, in great steadfastness, for the testimony
of Jesus, in the year 1569, on the 9th of March, having put off
her womanly weakness, and in place of it, by the grace of God,
received through the illumination of the Holy Spirit in her
heart a manly courage; and testified and sealed the belief of
the truth with her death, and blood, as a memorable example to
all followers of Christ.</p>

<h2>LIPPIJNTGEN STAYERTS, A. D. 1569</h2> 

<p>In the year 1569 there was put to death, at Ghent, in
Flanders, by the maintainers of the Roman antichrist, for the
genuine truth and the practice of it, a woman by the name of
Lippijntgen Stayerts, the wife of Pieter Stayerts, about St.
Peter's day, not on account of any crime, but only for the sure
truth, as she had renounced the world and all its false,
invented lies, and submitted herself to the prince of truth,
Christ Jesus, hearkening with obedient ears to the blessed
voice of truth, and shunning all strangers contrary to it,
wherefore she shall also, with all the obedient sheep that have
heard and followed this voice, at the revelation of His glory,
hear the words, "Come, ye blessed of my Father, inherit the
kingdom prepared for you from the beginning." Matthew
25:34.</p>

<h2>MAERTEN PIETERS AND GRIETGEN JANS, A. D. 1569</h2> 

<p>In the year 1569, the 25th of June, there was put to death
for the testimony of the truth, in Briel, reckoned to Holland,
on the Maese, Maerten Pieters of Maesland, a village situated
near Delft in Holland and with him Grietgen Jans, wife of
Adriaen Heynsen, a weaver of Swartewael. Maerten Pieters was
beheaded with the sword, and Grietgen Jans was burnt at the
stake, in the town, whereupon their dead bodies were taken
down, and conveyed out of the town, to the place of execution,
called the Nieuwe Noordt. Here Maerten Pieters was laid upon a
wheel, and his head upon a stake. And Grietgen Jans was again
tied to a stake, and thus given for food to the fowls of the
heavens. Ps. 79:2. And all this they suffered for the testimony
of the truth, were in no manner charged with any evil works,
but accused simply on account of having united with those
called Mennists, and having, according to the doctrine of
Christ, been baptized upon their faith, seeking thus to please
their Creator, according to all their ability. Therefore they
have a firm and sure promise from God: that all who have been
put to death by men, for the testimony of Jesus, shall receive
again in great glory at the resurrection of the dead these
their members, which are here sown in dishonor, being made like
unto the glorious body of Christ, and shall live with Him in
unspeakable joy forever and ever. II Maccabees 7:11; Phil.
3:21; I Cor. 2:9.</p>

<p>This account of the sacrifice of these pious witnesses of
God is taken from the book of criminal sentences of the town of
Briel,</p>

</div><div id="742"> 

<p>commenced on Bamis,* in the year 1564, and now, the 3rd of June
1616, extracted from it by the clerk of said town.</p>

<a name="741"></a>

<h2>DIRK WILLEMS, A. D. 1569</h2> 

<p>In the year 1569 a pious, faithful brother and follower of
Jesus Christ, named Dirk Willems, was apprehended at Asperen,
in Holland, and had to endure severe tyranny from the papists.
But as he had founded his faith not upon the drifting sand of
human commandments, but upon the firm foundation stone, Christ
Jesus, he, notwithstanding all evil winds of human doctrine,
and heavy showers of tyrannical and severe persecution,
remained immovable and steadfast unto the end; wherefore, when
the chief Shepherd shall appear in the clouds of heaven and
gather together His elect from all the ends of the earth, he
shall also through grace hear the words, "Well done, good and
faithful servant; thou hast been faithful over a few things, I
will make thee ruler over many things; enter thou into the joy
of thy Lord." I Pet. 5:4; Matt. 24:31; 25:23.</p>

<br /><cite>* <i>Perhaps St. Bartholomew's
day.-Trans.</i></cite> 

   <p>Concerning his apprehension, it is stated by trustworthy persons, that when he fled he was hotly pursued
by a thief-catcher, and as there had been some frost, said Dirk
Willems ran before over the ice, getting across with
considerable peril. The thief-catcher following him broke
through, when Dirk Willems, perceiving that the former was in
danger of his life, quickly returned and aided him in getting
out, and thus saved his life. The thiefcatcher wanted to let
him go, but the burgomaster, very sternly called to him to
consider his oath, and thus he was again seized by the
thief-catcher, and, at said place, after severe imprisonment
and great trials proceeding from the deceitful papists, put to
death at a lingering fire by these bloodthirsty, ravening
wolves, enduring it with great steadfastness, and confirming
the genuine faith of the truth with his death and blood, as an
instructive example to all pious Christians of this time, and
to the everlasting disgrace of the tyrannous papists.</p>

<p>NOTE.-In this connection, it is related as true from the
trustworthy memoirs of those who were present at the death of
this pious witness of Jesus Christ, that the place where this
offering occurred was without Asperen, on the side of Leerdam,
and that, a strong east wind blowing that day, the</p>

</div><div id="743"> 

<p>kindled fire was much driven away from the upper part of his
body, as he stood at the stake; in consequence of which this
good man suffered a lingering death, insomuch that in the town
of Leerdam, towards which the wind was blowing, he was heard to
exclaim over seventy times, "O my Lord; my God," etc., for which
cause the judge or bailiff, who was present on horseback,
filled with sorrow and regret at the man's sufferings, wheeled
about his horse, turning his back toward the place of
execution, and said to the executioner, "Dispatch the man with a
quick death." But how or in what manner the executioner then
dealt with this pious witness of Jesus, I have not been able to
learn, except only, that his life was consumed by the fire, and
that he passed through the conflict with great steadfastness,
having commended his soul into the hands of God.</p>

<p>As we have come into possession~of the sentence which these
rulers of darkness passed upon this friend of God, we have
deemed it well, to add it here for the benefit of the readers,
in order that reading the same, they may be able to perceive
the truth of this matter.</p>

<p>COPY.-Whereas, Dirk Willems, born at Asperen, at present a
prisoner, has,. without torture and iron bonds (or otherwise)
before the bailiff and us judges, confessed, that at,the age of
fifteen, eighteen or twenty years, he was rebaptized in
Rotterdam, at the house of one Pieter Willems, and that he,
further, in Asperen, at his house, at divers hours, harbored
and admitted secret conventicles and prohibited doctrines, and
that he also has permitted several persons to be rebaptized in
his aforesaid house; all of which is contrary to our holy
Christian faith, and to the decrees of his royal majesty, and
ought not to be tolerated, but severely punished, for an
example to others; therefore, we the aforesaid judges, having,
with mature deliberation of council, examined and considered
all that was to be considered in this matter, have condemned
and do condemn by these presents in the name; and in the
behalf, of his royal majesty, as Count of Holland, the
aforesaid Dirk Willems, prisoner, persisting obstinately in his
opinion, that he shall be executed with fire, until death
ensues; and declare all his property confiscated, for the
benefit of his royal majesty. So done this 16th of May, in
presence of the judges, -Cornelis Goverts, Jan van Stege Jans,
Adriaen Gerritts, Adriaen Jans, Lucas Rutgers, Jan Jans, and
Jan Roefelofs, A. D., 1569.</p>

<p>Extracted from the records of the town of Asperen, and after
collation this copy was found to agree [with the original], the
15th of October 1606. Acknowledged by me, the town clerk of A
speren.</p>

<p class="c5">T' SHEERENBERGH.</p><br />

<h1>HENDRICK ALEWIJNS, HANS MARIJNS VAN OOSTEN, AND GERRIT DUYNHERDER, A. D. 1569</h1> 

<p>In the year 1569 there were imprisoned for the testimony of
Jesus, at Middleburgh, in Zealand, the following pious sheep
and followers of Christ</p>

<p>Hendrick A!ewijns, a purse-maker by trade, and Hans Marijns
van Oosten, with Gerrit Duynherder. These suffered from the
ministers of antichrist manifold assaults, and threats and
tortures terrible to the flesh, all of which they, through
faith and the power of God (which was in them) patiently and
valiantly resisted. And after they had suffered all this for
Christ's sake, they were together burnt alive at said place, on
the 9th of February 1569, confirming the belief of the
everabiding truth with their death and blood, and now serve as
a beacon to all true believers, that they may follow their
unfeigned faith. Phil. 3:17.</p>

<p>The Hendrick Alevijns mentioned here was in his time a very
zealous follower of Christ, and was elected and chosen by the
brethren to serve the church of God with the Word of the holy
Gospel, in which he was very diligent, and, though young in the
service, he exceedingly abounded and increased in the work of
God. II Cor. 8:19; Luke 1:2; I Tim. 4:15. And though he had
neither silver nor gold, nor temporal means, yet his hands
gained him and his wife and children a livelihood, and he
sought to minister to the flock of Christ not for the milk and
wool, but this hero followed the good, true and faithful
Shepherd Jesus, and willingly, of a ready mind, ministered to
the work of God, wherefore, at the appearance of the chief
Shepherd, he shall receive the imperishable crown of honor.
Acts 3:6; 20:34; Matt. 10:16; Ezek. 34:3; I Pet. 5:2, 4.</p>

<p>During the time of his imprisonment he also did not forget
his brethren and sisters, but wrote beautiful letters,
descriptions and hymns, worthy of being read, to them, as also
to his three little orphans; some of which have previously
already appeared in print. We pray the reader attentively to
read those adduced here, the first of which was sent to the
beloved children of God in Zealand, and reads as follows</p>

<h2>An epistle from Hendrick Alewijns, sent to the beloved
children of God in Zealand, written in his prison at Middleburgh, where he steadfastly testified to the truth of God with his death, on the 9th of February, A. D. 1569</h2> 

<p>A most Christian greeting and salutation in the Lord!
Hendrick Alewijns, unworthy, a weak brother and simple
companion in the faith in God, a partaker of His sufferings,
also of patience, and of the hope of eternal life, with all the
saints, all through the grace of God, unmerited. Grace, peace,
the mercy of God, salvation, prosperity, and everything good
from above, through Christ Jesus, constantly to be kept stirred
up, and the ,ardent im-</p>

</div><div id="744"> 

<p>pelling of the Holy Spirit, even unto the blessed end, these
things I wish all my beloved friends, brethren, sisters, and
companions, from God the Father, through Jesus Christ our dear
Lord, Redeemer and Saviour. Amen. This I send as a greeting, in
a good intention, from the very depths of my love, to you, as
my special acquaintances and friends, to exhort and stir up one
another to good devotion, while absent, yet in one hope of the
kingdom and glory of God, though I am now confined at a
distance from you.</p>

<p>My very kind, especially peaceable and ever wellmeaning
friends, seeing before me my departure from this life, and
having time to write, I gladly turn to your love for a little
while, to give you intelligence and glad tidings, which, I
presume, is according to your wish and desire. Behold; be it
known to you all, that I, your friend, am still prospering in
the Lord, in both respects, that is, in body and soul, in the
unchanging determination, to endeavor with a good resolution,
to keep body and soul surrendered to and in God, pleasing to
you to hear, and to my salvation. May God grant this to the
blessed end of my faith, O dear Lord. Amen.</p>

<p>Further, the cause of my writing to you, and to your love,
is also to ask you to help me pray in my behalf, for
steadfastness in God's truth, and that I may live in His grace,
and for God's faithful assistance towards me. I inform you that
I am of very good cheer in my imprisonment, tribulation,
sorrow, reproach, and suffering for righteousness' sake; and
also I have, with all the saints, in my tribulation, a bright
prospect, the hope and consolation of the Spirit, and the rich
promises of God to succor us in this present time, who also
assures us of eternal life hereafter, of which so abundantly
mention is made in the Scriptures.</p>

<p>In the first place, I know, consider, and firmly believe
with many saints, according to the abundant testimony of the
Scriptures, that God is faithful in keeping His promises. Read
Deut. 32:4; Numbers 23:19; I Cor. 10:13; I Thess. 5:24; II Tim.
2:13. He will not suffer us to be tempted above that we are
able to bear, but will with the temptation also make a way to
escape. He does not leave His children comfortless. He will
with His Spirit defend us before kings and princes, as much as
will be needful at the time. He will, and knows how, to deliver
the godly out of temptation. He says, "I will never leave thee, nor forsake thee." Therefore I
will trust in the Lord, and not fear what man shall do unto me.
Heb. 13:5, 6."What can flesh do?" says Paul.</p>

<p>Again, "If God be with us, who can be against us?" and God is
with us, if we are with Him, mark. Romans 8:31; II Chron. 15:2.
Again, "We are troubled on every side, yet not distressed; we
are perplexed, but not in despair; persecuted, but not
forsaken; cast down, but not destroyed."</p>

<p>Again, "Thanks be unto God, which always causeth us to
triumph in Christ Jesus." II Cor. 2:14. Again, "Whatsoever is
born of God over cometh the world." I John 5:4. For which cause
we faint not (because of God's consolation); but though our
outward man perish, yet the inward man is renewed day by day. I
I Cor. 4:16. Again, "I can do all things through Christ which strengtheneth me."
Phil. 4:13. O how blessed is the man that endureth temptation:
for when he is tried, he shall receive the crown of life, which
God has promised to them (he says, to them) that love Him.
James 1:12.</p>

<p>And since God is so faithful in all His promises, as said,
we press straight on with righteousness, as though we beheld
God, and saw no adversaries; as though we saw no decree, fire,
water, or sword. For who is he that will harm us, if we be
followers of that which is good? as Peter assures us. I Peter
3:13. Also Paul says, "Who shall separate us from the love of
God?" etc. Rom. 8: 35. Who will pluck our Shepherd's sheep out
of His hand? No one. John 10:28. But one can and may indeed
himself stray out of His hand. Again it is written, "No evil
shall happen to him that feareth God; for when he is tempted,
he shall be delivered again." Mark, John says, "There is no fear
in love" (I John 4:18); understand, such fear as departs from
the way of rectitude. Yea, such fearless ones run through
patience (mark, through), not out of, but into, the conflict
that is set before us, and look not at the dreadful tyranny,
but unto Jesus, the Captain, the Author and Finisher of our
faith. Heb. 12:2.</p>

<p>And these comforting promises of God, here partly mentioned
and touched upon, behold, speak, and treat chiefly only of
God's keeping, assisting and strengthening us, in this time,
and in the sufferings of this present time.</p>

<p>But, friends, how much greater and more valuable must be the
consolation, reward, and the crown of eternal life, of which so
much is said in other places, of God's eternal life, kingdom
and glofy, which are promised to those that overcome and
patiently endure, as will here in part follow.</p>

<p>In the first place, observe in the Book of Wisdom,
concerning the day of judgment, and the glory of God's
elect, "Then shall the righteous man stand in great boldness
before the face of such as have afflicted him, and made no
account of his labors." Wisd. 5:1. Again, "The righteous live
for evermore; their reward also is with the Lord, and the care
of them is with the Most High. Therefore shall they receive a
glorious kingdom, and a beautiful crown from the Lord's hand."
Verses 15, 16. Mark well, an eternal reward. Again, "The souls of the righteous are in the hand of God, and the
torment of death shall not touch them." In the sight of the
unwise they seem to die, and their departure and going from us
are taken for destruction; but they are in peace. For though
they have much suffering (he says, much suffering) in the sight
of men, yet is their hope full of immortality, and having been
a little chastised, they shall be greatly rewarded; for God
proves</p>

</div><div id="745"> 

<p>them, and finds them worthy for Himself. Wisd. 3:1-5. Yea,
here they shall suffer strait things, but hope for the wide:
but they that have lived wickedly, and yet have suffered the
strait things, shall not see the wide, alas, no. II Esd. 7:.18.
Again, II Macc. 7:36, "My brethren, who now have suffered
themselves to be martyred for a short time, now wait for
everlasting life, according to God's promise" (he says,
everlasting life according to God's promise). Again, also the
promises of our Lord Jesus Christ Himself, "That all who have
followed him in the regeneration (he says, in the regeneration)
and have forsaken everything dear to them, house, home, wife,
children, etc., and their own life, shall receive a hundred
fold in this time, and hereafter everlasting life; and shall
also sit with Him upon thrones, and help judge the twelve
tribes of Israel. Matt. 19:28.</p>

<p>Again, "Blessed are ye that weep now: for ye shall laugh.
Blessed are ye, when men shall hate you, and when they shall
separate you from their company, and shall reproach you, and
cast out your name as evil, for the Son of man's sake. Rejoice
ye in that day, and leap for joy: for behold, your reward is
great in heaven" (he says, in heaven). Luke 6:21. Mark,
heavenly consolation. Again, Paul says, "Blessed be God, even
the Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, the Father of mercies, and
the God of all comfort; who comforteth us in all our
tribulation, that we may be able to comfort them which are in
any trouble, by the comfort wherewith we ourselves are
comforted of God. For as the sufferings of Christ abound in us,
so our consolation also aboundeth by Christ." II Cor. 1:3-5.
Again, "He that soweth to the Spirit shall of the Spirit reap
life and peace." O friends, let us therefore not be weary in
welldoing; for in due season we shall reap without ceasing (he
says, without ceasing). Gal. 6:8;,9. O friends, let this claim
your joyful consideration and attention. Now no chastening for
the present seemeth to be joyous, but grievous: nevertheless,
afterward (he says, afterward) it yieldeth the peaceable fruit
of righteousness unto them (he says, them) which are exercised
thereby. Heb. 12:11. Again, in Paul we further find, "It is a
faithful saying [he says, a faithful saying]: For if we be dead
with him, we shall also live with him: if we suffer, we shall
also reign with him; if we deny him, he also will deny us." II
Timothy 2:11, 12.</p>

<p>Again, in Peter, also we read, "Beloved, think it not strange
concerning the fiery trial which is to try you, as though some
strange thing happened unto you [he says as though some strange
thing happened unto. you]: but be partakers of Christ's
sufferings, that, when he shall be revealed, ye may be glad
also with exceeding joy." I Pet. 4:12, 13.</p>

<p>Behold, such and similar beautiful promises, and heavenly
consolations for the hereafter, yea, such in great abundance,.
make tribulation sweet, precious and light. For our light
affliction, which is but for a moment, worketh for us a far
more ex ceeding and eternal weight of glory; while we look not
at the things which are seen, but at the things which are not
seen; which are nevertheless true. II Corinthians 4:17. Hence
it is impossible for these to be plucked out of the hand of our
Shepherd. Yea, God is faithful, and not unrighteous to forget
your work and labor of love, in that ye have ministered to the
saints, and do minister. I Cor. 10:13; Hebrews 6:10.</p>

<p>Now, mark well, the beautiful promises of God mentioned
here, and many similar ones, point and reach farther than God's
help in the distress of this present time; the promises for the
present time being essentially different ones, as said above.
But these are full promises and a reward for the hereafter, in
eternal, imperishable, yea, unspeakable or inexpressible glory,
even as Peter says of these unspeakable things, "Blessed be the
God and Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, which according to his
abundant mercy hath begotten us again unto a lively hope by the
resurrection of Jesus Christ from the dead, to an inheritance
incorruptible, and undefiled, and that fadeth not away,
reserved in heaven for you, who are kept by the power of God
through faith unto salvation ready to be revealed in the last
time [mark, in the last time]. Wherein ye shall rejoice with
joy unspeakable [mark, unspeakable] and full of glory:
receiving the end of your faith, even the salvation of your
souls." [Mark who]. He says, "Ye who now for a season, if need
be are in heaviness through manifold temptations: that the
trial of your .faith, being much more precious than of gold
that perisheth, though it be tried with fire, might be found
unto praise and honor and glory at the appearing of Jesus
Christ: whom having not seen, ye love; in whom, though now ye
see him not, yet believing, ye rejoice with joy unspeakable,"
as already quoted. I Pet. 1-:3. Justly does Esdras say of the
incomprehensible and unspeakable recompense of God, "Thou canst
not find out my judgment, or in the end the love that I have
promised unto my people." II Esd. 5:40.</p>

<p>Happy those venturesome ones who now sow liberally to the
Spirit in every manner, without becoming weary (Gal. 6:9); for
it will not be lost, will not spoil, rot, rust, or become moth
eaten.</p>

<p>Observe and read Matt. 6:19; Luke 12:33; I Tim. 6:19. O
brethren, our faithful God is surely faithful. The alms of a
man is as a signet with Him, and He will keep the good deeds of
a man as the apple of the eye; and afterward He will rise up
and reward them, and render their recompense upon their heads.
Sir. 17:22, 23. Observe: Thus we may well say with Sirach, "We
have had labor for a little season, and have found great
comfort." 51:27.</p>

<p>O friends, let us not be weary in sowing and well-doing, for
our reward, according to the promises of God, is great in the
time to come, as has been heard, and is unfathomable,
incomprehensible and unspeakable. Nevertheless, it is now
revealed to</p>

</div><div id="746"> 

<p>His saints, by His Spirit. I Cor. 2:10. It is an eternal and
exceeding weight of glory. II Cor. 4:17.</p>

<p>Now, all attentive [readers], who firmly believe, know and
hope this with all their heart and from the depths of their
soul, and also understand, on what conditions, and to whom, and
to whom not, this glorious kingdom is promised and sure. Such
an intelligent and far-seeing Christian is so rich in hope
toward God, so firmly anchored in his soul, that he completely
and humbly surrenders himself soul and body to a faithful
Creator, however, in well doing without boasting. I Pet.
4:19.</p>

<p>Yea, we confess and declare with all saints rich in hope,
that this present time is short, and that the sufferings of
this time, for righteousness, are small, and, hence, not worthy
to be compared with the glory which shall be revealed in us
(Rom. 8:18), as will here follow.</p>

<p>Believers lightly esteem the sufferings of this present
time, because of the hope, promise, and reward.</p>

<p>In the first place, the youngest of the seven brothers in
Maccabees spoke thus out of his joyful hope, "My brethren, who
now have suffered themselves to be martyred for a little while,
now wait for eternal life according to God's promise." II Macc.
7:36. Again, in Solomon we read, "Having been a little chastised
[mark, a little], they shall be greatly rewarded." Wisd. 3:5.
Again, in Peter, also, "Ye who now for a season [he says, for a
season], if need be, are in heaviness through manifold
temptations," etc. I Pet. 1:6. Again, "The God of all grace, who
hath called us unto his eternal glory by Christ Jesus, after
that ye have suffered a while [he says, a while], make you
perfect, stablish, strengthen, settle you." I Pet. 5:10.</p>

<p>These and other like passages esteem the sufferings of this
present time short, small and light, and the reproach of Christ
greater riches than the treasures of this world. Heb. 11:26.
The fearful woman in travail, of whom Christ speaks, has
anguish in her hour of travail, but afterwards she rejoices,
and forgets the anguish. John 16:21. And these, who are thus
strong in God, though weak and nothing of themselves, who are
thus surely fixed in faith, hope, and the love of God, these (I
say these) say with Paul, "Who shall separate us from the love
of God.""For I am persuaded." he says,"that neither death, nor
life . . . shall be able to separate us from the love of God.
which is in Christ Jesus our Lord." Rom. 8:35. For if God be
with them, who can be against them? Verse 31.</p>

<p>But it were fearful presumption, to boast, or say, yea, to
think, without God and a good conscience toward Him, that we
can do anything of ourselves. Such arrogancy, boasting and self
strength, as in the case of inconsiderate Peter, are nothing,
even as the independent, severed branch, without abiding in its
vine, can do nothing. John 15:6. And as those impotent
individuals who took upon them to cast out Satan in the name of
Jesus, whom Paul preached (Acts 19:13) , even so can no
powerless man boast without God; he must first calculate
whether he dare with ten thousand go out against twenty
thousand, according to the counsel and words of Christ. Luke
14:31. Therefore, he that would glory, let him glory in the
Lord: If the Lord will, and we live. Jer. 9:23; I Cor. 1:31;
James 4:15. And if He be with him, no one can be against him.
Rom. 8:31. And God is with them if they are with God. Then they
can do all things through Christ, which strengthened them. By
their God they can leap over a wall, run through a troop, and
overcome the world. The gates of hell cannot prevail against
them; for love with its patient hope and firm faith can do all
things through the grace of God. Mark well, they who thus
closely, firmly and boldly cleave to God, become stronger in
the conflict, as Sirach says. Sir. 2:3. Cleave therefore unto
God, and depart or waver neither to the right nor left, that
you may continually wax stronger.</p>

<p>Mark: God said to Joshua, whom He appointed in Moses' office
and stead, "I will not fail thee, nor forsake thee. Be strong
and of a good courage." Josh. 1:5, 6. Again, "Be strong and of a
good courage, fear not, nor be afraid of them: for the Lord thy
God, he it is that doth go with thee; he will not fail thee,
nor forsake thee." Deut. 31:6. Mark here the advantage of
freely trusting -in God's promise. Hence such a pious people
say thus in their hearts, "O Lord God of Israel, there is no God
like thee in the heaven, nor in the earth; which keepest
covenant, and shewest mercy unto thy servants, that walk before
thee with all their hearts." lI Chron. 6:14. Observe well who
they are: he says, [that walk before thee] with all their
hearts. Whose rock and fortress is the Lord; who is their God,
deliverer, consolation, and shield; the horn of their
salvation; their high tower and refuge; their Saviour who saves
them from all violence. II Sam. 22:2, 3. These are also they
who have-set the Lord always before them; hence He is at their
right hand, and they shall therefore not be moved, says David.
Ps. 16:8. Mark here boldness, and its power. But the fear of
man bringeth a snare: (mark) but whoso putteth his trust in the
Lord shall be safe. Ps. 29:25. Mark: he that is with God, and
with whom God is. David says, "The salvation of the righteous is of the Lord: he is their
strength in the time of trouble." Ps. 37: 39.</p>

<p>But, dear friends, if one is not pious, pure in heart, and
prepared for temptation as a servant of God, when this
temptation assails and terrifies him; if he is not found in a
pure conscience, genuine love of God and his neighbor, in a
pious life, firm faith, sober vigilance, and armed against
every assault; but is an impotent follower, a niggard, a
sleeper, or hypocrite, then, O friends, God will forsake him;
for David says, "If I regard iniquity in my heart, the Lord will
not hear me." Ps. 66: 18."The Lord is far from the wicked: but
he hear-</p>

</div><div id="747"> 

<p>eth the prayer of the righteous." Prov. 15:29. Yea, it is
true; for God heareth not sinners (mark, those who continue in
sin); but if any man fear God, and doeth His will (doeth, it
says), him He heareth. John 9:31.</p>

<p>Hence I conclude and counsel with wise Jesus Sirach, "My son,
if thou come to serve the Lord, prepare thy soul for
temptation;" he says, prepare thy soul for temptation. Sir.
2:1. Again, also with Christ, "Strive to enter in at the strait
gate. Yea, take heed that thy fear of God be not hypocrisy;
lest God discover thy secrets, and cast thee down thereby in
the midst of the congregation, because thou camest not in truth
to the Lord, and thy heart was full of deceit and falseness."
Sir. 1:28. Behold, such cannot overcome; but only those who are
in favor with their God, as is mentioned in Judith 5.</p>

<p>Now, there is further to be noticed the patience of which
the pious have need in many tribulations. Heb. 10:36. Also,
what great advantage, profit, gain, and acquisition are, and
will be, obtained by tribulation and patience, follows here in
part. Meditate on it.</p>

<p>In the first place, the encouraging words of Judith, "Thus
Abraham, Isaac, Jacob, Moses, and all whom God loved, remained
steadfast and had to overcome much affliction [he says: much
affliction]. But the others, who would not receive affliction
in fear of God, but blasphemed and murmured with impatience
against God, were destroyed by the destroyer and by serpents.
Let us therefore not be impatient in this affliction, but
confess that it is a punishment from God, much less than our
sins deserve, and believe that we are chastised as his
servants, for correction, and not for destruction." Judith 8. O
how wisely does Solomon speak of it, "He that is patient is
prudent, and it is his glory to pass over a transgression."
Prov. 19:11. Again, "He that is patient is wise; but he that is
impatient reveals his folly." 14:29. And again, "A patient man
is better than a strong man; and he that ruleth his spirit than
he that taketh a city." 16:32. Mark how lovely, praiseworthy
and advantageous godly patience is, as Jeremiah testifies, "It
is a precious thing to be patient, and to wait for the help of
the Lord; Yea, that a man that is forsaken, be patient when
something befalleth him; and puts his mouth in the dust, and
wait for the help of the Lord, and give his cheek to the
smiter, and suffer much reproach, for the Lord will not cast
off forever." Lam. 3:26.</p>

<p>Again, Sirach says, "An humble man will wait for the time
which will bring him comfort. For though his cause be oppressed
for a time, yet shall the pious praise his wisdom." Sir. 1:23,
24. Of this we have examples in job and in"the end of the
Lord." Jas. 5:11. Also in Tobit, for God permitted affliction
to come upon him-why? That posterity might have an example of
patience in him, as also in holy job. An angel said to this
Tobit (when he complained that he could not see the light of
heaven);"Have patience, God shall soon help hee, . which also
came to pass." Tob. 5:12. Paul does truly say that whatsoever
things were written aforetime were written for our learning,
that we through patience and the comfort of the Scriptures,
might have hope. But, friends, mark well, where no promise nor
godly tribulation is, there is certainly no need of patience;
but where the aforesaid are, Oh, there is need of patience.
Heb. 10: 36. For we know, says Paul, that tribulation worketh
patience, and patience, experience; and experience, hope; and
hope maketh not ashamed. Again, also, Christ's own words
concerning patience, "Ye shall be hated of all men for my name's
sake. But there shall not a hair of your head perish. In your
patience possess ye your souls." Luke 21:17-19.</p>

<p>Again, Paul advises us to all patience in all our distress,
and to approve ourselves thjerein as the ministers of God, in
much patience, in afflictions, in necessities, in stripes, in
imprisonments, (yea, in imprisonments), in tumults, in labors,
in watchings, in fastings, by pureness, by knowledge, by
longsuffering, by kindness, by the Holy Ghost, by love
unfeigned, by the word of truth, by the power of God, by the
armor of righteousness on the right hand and on the left, by
honor and dishonor, by evil report, yea, as deceivers and yet
true. Mark, in how many things a patient minister of God is
tried, that is, in these and similar things (II Cor. 6:4),
mark, a minister of God, and whereby he is shown to be such.
Again, James would have us count it all joy when we fall into
divers temptations; knowing this (he says), that your faith, if
it be genuine, worketh patience. But patience must be constant
unto the end. Jas. 1:2.</p>

<p>Behold, thus we must with patience (with patience, says
Paul), run the race that is set before us, looking unto the
Captain of our faith, the young man who will set the crown of
reward upon our heads, on Mount Sion. Heb. 12:1; II Esd.
2:43.</p>

<p>Behold, all this is obtained as the profit and reward of
patience, as in the case of Christ, and of all holy martyrs;
and it must all be seen by faith, and waited for with patience,
as James advises, saying, "Be patient therefore, brethren, unto
the coming of our Lord, and like the husbandman, let us also
wait for our harvest and joyful time of reaping." Jas. 5:7. O
then the liberal sowers, who have sowed to the Spirit shall
reap without ceasing. Gal. 6:9.</p>

<p>Dear friends, let us now, as at the right time, also at the
right time, sow liberally to the Spirit and in hope, with joy
and not wearying; for in due time it will fill our garner with
sheaves as large as in I Pet. 1:16.* For God will not forget
our work and labor, as has already been said.</p>

<p>To sum it all up in a few words, "Blessed is the man that
endureth temptation; for when he is tried, he shall receive the
crown of life; which God hath promised to them that love him."
Jas. 1:12. Now, this promise, inheritance, reward, and
crown</p>

<p class="c8">* Evidently a misquotation.-Trans.</p>

</div><div id="748"> 

<p>meets the wants of everyone; but only few relish the notable
conditions upon which these are promised, namely, obedience to
the Word of God, complete renunciation of ourselves, and the
cheerful, voluntary bearing of our cross. For Paul says, "Unto us it is given, not only to believe on him, but also
to suffer for his sake. Phil. 1:29.</p>

<p>Mark, friends, that it is certainly his pleasure, that the
servant be as his lord. Matt. 10:25. Hence Christ in His time
assured His servants and disciples of so much sorrow,
tribulation, reproach, suffering, and of death, for His name's
sake. He did not give it to them as His opinion, not as
something which might eventually, or perhaps come to pass, but
positively assured them that it should befall them, as will
here follow, and, in part, be shown.</p>

<p>In the first place, Christ's own words, "Behold, I send you
forth as sheep in the midst of wolves: be ye therefore wise as
serpents, and harmless as doves. But beware of men: for they
will deliver you up [he says, they will deliver you up] to the
councils, and they will scourge you in their synagogues; and ye
shall be brought before governors and kings for my sake, for a
testimony against them and the Gentiles." Matt. 10:16-18.</p>

<p>Again, "The brother shall," he says, shall,"deliver up the
brother to death, and the father the child; and the children
shall rise up against their parents, and cause them to be put
to death. And ye shall" he says, shall,"be hated of all men for
my name's sake." Verses 21, 22.</p>

<p>Again, "Remember the word that I said unto you, The servant
is not greater than his lord, nor the disciple above his
master. If they have persecuted me, they will [he says, they
will] also persecute you; if they have kept my saying, they
will keep yours also. But all these things will they do unto
you for my name's sake." John 15:20, 21.</p>

<p>And again, "These things have I spoken unto you that ye
should not be offended. They shall [he says, they shall] put
you out of the synagogues; yea, the time cometh, that whosoever
killeth you will think that he doeth God service. And these
things will they do unto you, because they have not known the
Father, nor me. But these things have I told you, that when the
time shall come. [mark well] ye may remember that I told you of
them." 16:1-4. Paul, also, says that we must through much
tribulation (he says, must through much tribulation) enter into
the kingdom of God. Acts 14:22. And that all (he says, all)
that will live godly in Christ Jesus shall suffer persecution.
II Tim. 3:12.</p>

<p>Now, dear friends, mark, if it must be so, and also will be
so; as has been mentioned in part, and is certain, then, in the
name of God, let it be [borne] willingly, and let us not regard
the fearful tribulation and distress, but look far beyond, as
said before, and be mindful of the comfort contained in the
declaration that this temporal tribulation is not worthy to be
compared with the eternal glory (Rom. 8:18); and let us also
remember that this evil and unrighteous world is not fit for,
and was not worthy of, that blessed crown for suffering for
righteousness' sake. Heb. 11:38.</p>

<p>But they are fit who have followed Christ in the
regeneration, and forsaken all that is dear to them here. Matt.
19:28. Remember also, brethren, that they who are, ,or would
be, without this chastisement, are bastards, and not sons. Heb.
12:8. Thus, tribulation is certainly promised us believers, as
has been heard.</p>

<p>With regard to this, I counsel with Sirach and many others.
If we would serve God, let us do it with earnestness, lest we
tempt Him (Sir. 18:23); for he that would be God's servant,
must prepare (mark, prepare) himself for temptation, and always
labor in the work of the Lord, that, whether we be present with
Him, or whether we be here, absent from Him, we may always
please God; and everyone of us must strive to be (not to think,
or boast [of being], but to be), the chief in good works, as
also Peter says, "Wherefore, beloved, seeing that ye look for
his coming, be diligent that ye may be found of him in peace,
without spot, and blameless." II Pet. 3:14. Oh, how we must be
prepared then with a holy conversation, and with godliness.
Every man that hath this hope in him must purify himself, even
as He (whom we look for) is pure. I John 3:3. He that is holy,
must become still holier; and he that is pure, still purer. To
become holier and holier behooves us, since we call upon such
an Holy One as our Father, who judges without respect of
persons, as Peter says, and this according to every man's work.
Hence, pass the time of your sojourning here in fear, and it
will then be with us as Peter says, "Let all them that suffer
according to the will of God commit the keeping of their souls
to him with good works [mark, with good works], as unto a
faithful Creator." I Peter 4:19. Let no one here understand
salvation by good works, but salvation with good works; good
works without meriting salvation (mark well) for salvation is
of grace, thanks to our Lord Christ, as in Gal. 2:16, and still
clearer in Eph. 2:7.* This I say is my advice, that we also
thus prepare our souls, and commit them to Him as unto a
faithful [Creator], with good works without boasting (without
boasting), as His unprofitable servants, who would fain be
perfect. Luke 17:10. Finally, dear friends, let us not seek to
save our life, which, at all events, we must eventually lose;
but let us always entreat our God for strength to suffer, that
we may finish our course as valiant adventurers. Amen, dear
Lord, Amen.</p>

<p>Here now follow instances of exemplary adventurers of former
times-pious persons that were persecuted, greatly hated, and
put to death; mark, how, by whom, and also why these things
always happened; namely, in order that we need not think it
strange, when we become partakers of the same sufferings and
death.</p>

<p class="c8">* 17, the original has it; but this is evidently
an error.-Trans.</p>

</div><div id="749"> 

<p>In the first place, pious, good Abel was slain by Cain, out
of hatred on account of his piety. Lot was greatly vexed by
the- wanton Sodomites, because of his virtue and righteousness.
David was persecuted by Saul, Shimei, and by Absalom his son,
for his glory and own kingdom. The man of God from Judah was
threatened by Jeroboam, because of his .prophesying against
Jeroboam's gods and his altar. I Kings 13. The holy and mighty
prophet of God, Elijah, and many others who were put to death
in his time; he had to flee from the place, and was greatly
persecuted by Jezebel, on account of his prophetic miracles
which he wrought through God. I Kings 19. Micaiah was
imprisoned by the king, who fed him with the water and bread of
affliction; because he opposed the four hundred false prophets
of Jezebel with the Spirit and holy Word of God. I Kings 22:27.
Urijah, a prophet, and also a fugitive, was brought back, and
slain with the sword by King Jehoiakim, on account of his
message from God, the prophecy against Jerusalem and the land
of Judah. Jer. 26:20-23. Jeremiah, a prophet of God, was cast
by the princes into the miry pit to die, because he would not
cease to preach and prophesy in the name of the Lord. Jer.
38:6. Zechariah, a priest's son, and prophet of the Lord, was
stoned at the commandment of the king, because he had
prophesied nothing but calamity for them, because they had
forsaken that which was good, and transgressed the Word of God.
II Chron. 24:21. Mark, for what reason each one of these was
put to death.</p>

<p>The three young men, Shadrach, Meshach, and Abednego, were
by King Nebuchadnezzar cast into a furnace heated seven times
more than it was wont to be heated-in which God nevertheless
preserved them on account of their trust in Him-and this
because they would not honor neither worship the king's
self-made image, idol and buffoonery. Daniel 3:19. Daniel, a
most worthy and holy prophet of God, was by the worshipers of
the dragon, out of hatred and envy, cast into the den of lions,
against the will and power of the king; God, however, preserved
and delivered him. This was done, because he, fearing no man,
nor the king's plain and strict commandment, openly worshiped,
honored and confessed his God alone, with the windows open
toward Jerusalem. <i>Hist. of the Destr. of the Drag.</i> Dan.
6:10. Mark, are not the pious subtilely sought? Yes, sought and
found. O Lord, all the steadfast pious in Israel were
scattered, and most atrociously slain by Antiochus. Why? Mark,
because they circumcised their children, according to God's
commandment, would eat no swine's flesh, according to the
prohibition of the law, and refused to follow the heathen
customs, since they were unclean and contrary to the law. I
Macc. 1. Again, on another occasion, all the Jews were
everywhere caught like wild beasts, bound, chased, dragged off,
conveyed away in ships, and doomed to a general massacre, from
which latter, however, they were miraculously delivered by the
hand of God. They were thus tormented by King Ptolemy, because
they would not be compelled by him to depart from the law of
God, sacrifice to idols; and adopt heathen customs. III Macc..
No fair reason, friends; and so it is still. Again, in the
second book of the Macca.bees the same,thing is enacted. A
cruel decree of said King Ptolemy, which whoever should not
obey, was to be put to death instantly. II Macc. 6:9.</p>

<p>Some were burnt. Two women had their infants tied or hanged
to their breasts, and were thus led in derision round about the
city, and finally cast headlong over the walls. Mark why?
Because they adhered steadfastly to the law of God, and had
circumcised their children. Thus also Eleazar, an aged man of
ninety, was slain by Antiochus. Why? Because of his unfeigned
steadfastness in refusing to eat swine's flesh, or to pretend
to eat it. Again, also a pious mother and seven steadfast sons
were by King Antiochus roasted in red-hot pans, with the skins
of their heads pulled off, and their tongues cut out. II Macc.
7. Why? Mark, because they would in no wise eat swine's flesh
contrary to the law, because it was forbidden. And similar
instances in the Old Testament.</p>

<p>In the New Testament, also, we find instances of a like
character.</p>

<p>In the first place, the holy forerunner of Christ, John the
Baptist, was beheaded by Herod. That good man, why did he kill
him? Mark, because he reproved Herod for an improper and
shameful liaison. The good Christ Jesus was also hated by the
world, because He testified of its evil works. Yea, without
guilt or cause worthy of death, Pontius Pilate the judge,
through the hatred of the Jews, delivered Him up, and put Him
to death. The holy apostles, also, were frequently apprehended,
scourged, and forbidden to preach in the name of Jesus, by the
council of the priests. Why? In order that the name, doctrine
and church of Jesus should not spread and increase.</p>

<p>Stephen, a deacon, and pious witness of Jesus, was stoned by
the stiffnecked. Why? Because they could not resist his spirit,
wisdom, and doctrine. The church at Jerusalem, in the
beginning, was dispersed and scattered abroad throughout the
land of Judea, by the Jews. And Saul, the persecutor, went
hither and thither with letters and authority to apprehend and
vex any whom he should find of this way or persuasion, in order
to hinder the doctrine, faith and way of Christ. And, yet, to
be brief, some were vexed by Herod; he killed James with the
sword, and seeing that it pleased the people, he apprehended
also Peter, and guarded him with sixteen servants, and bound
him with two chains, with doors closed, through the hatred of
the Jews; but an angel delivered him. Acts 12:1. Let us
therefore not wonder at this as though it was something
strange.</p>

<p>Now, in conclusion, receive my eternal adieu, and brotherly
greeting.</p>

<p>Behold, I have written this to my dear friends, brethren and
sisters in the Lord, in humility, with</p>

</div><div id="750"> 

<p>a good intention, and in love, for three special reasons.
The first reason is, to communicate to you welcome news,
namely, an account of my prosperity, good health and
cheerfulness, in both respects, that is, in soul and body; and
to stir you up to aid me in praising, thanking, and praying to
God for all His grace and comfort, shown towards me unworthy
one here, and also towards us all. Of this comfort (by which I
also am comforted of God) it has been my endeavor to
communicate to you a share, according to your wish and desire
already referred to, and I send it to you as a honey-comb,
perfume of roses, balm, incense and myrrh, from Eden's pleasure
garden as it were, fruits of the heavenly paradise; as a fruit,
sample, perfume and delectation for you, to be inwardly
contemplated with attention; yea, as a signal token to you of
my joy and peace which I feel to have with God, in union and in
one spirit. Oh, I, unworthy and unprofitable servant of my
Lord, that I enjoy peace with my Christ, and the fellowship of
His Spirit. Rom. 8:15; I Cor. 6:17; Gal. 3:26. Be it said to
His praise, it is all through His merciful faithfulness, and
great, unmerited grace. I glory in the Lord, and in His power;
we have received from Him this precious treasure in our weak
earthen vessels; hence, if it is preserved, the excellency of
the power is of God and not of us; Oh, not of us, but by grace
we are what we are. Jer. 9:24; 11 Cor. 4:7.</p>

<p>The second reason is, that, since you are partakers with me
of the same hope, reward and comfort, I might awaken in you a
refreshing, devotion, renewed joy in the promises, and inward
gladness, by pointing out our comfort mentioned, consisting in
doctrine- and example of the Scriptures, as noticed here in
part, thereby showing my favor, love and affection towards you
all, as remembering you in the Lord.</p>

<p>Thirdly and lastly, also for the reason that I might make
many of you my debtors, to do the same in their turn, that is,
to send us a letter, in token of your steadfast continuance in
love, for our comfort and joy, and the acknowledgment of your
remembrance of us, according to the doctrine, debt and
obligation towards prisoners; as in Matt. 25:36; Acts 12:5; II
Tim. 1:16; Heb. 13:3. This from you would be most acceptable to
us three prisoners here-Oh, as welcome as the perfume of
opening roses, incense and myrrh from the bowers of Zion, the
vineyard and pleasure-garden of our God; which has hitherto
happened to us so very little, far too little, almost as though
your love to us had ceased. Stop! lest I wound you or someone
else by words spoken with no evil intent; for I do not have
reference to the necessaries of life. Oh, no; we thank God and
our careful friends most heartily for these. Accept from me in
good part all that is good, and interpret all my love according
to love; this I earnestly pray for the Lord's sake. Let no one
misapprehend my labor of love, by interpreting it, or thinking,
as though I had done this or the like from desire for honor and
praise, or from any hankering after a gift from any one, or
after any carnal or earthly communion; for it was love which,
out of a pure intention, prompted me to it. O Lord, thou
knowest it all.</p>

<p>Yes, my friends, pure love thinketh no evil; however, she
sees, finds and reproves evil. Examples of this are, Ananias,
Simon the sorcerer, the Corinthian fornicator, etc. Acts 5:1;
8:9; I Cor. 5:1.</p>

<p>And now, dear friends, brethren and sisters, I again commend
you to God, and to the Word of His grace (as the salutation of
Paul), which is able to build you up, and to give you an
inheritance among all them which are sanctified. Be saluted,
strengthened, comforted, and of good cheer in the Lord.</p>

<p>Watch and pray. By me, HENDRICK ALEWIJNS, and my fellow
prisoners, all of us of good cheer. Farewell. Given in
November, A. D. 1568.</p>

<p>Yes, dear friends, before this letter left my hands, two of
us were brought before the court; dear Gerrit Jans Duynherder,
our pious brother and myself. And behold, we are kept in
durance, as sufficiently sentenced, and both of us expect to
die very soon now. O Lord 1 O Lord! into Thy hands, O faithful
Creator! we com9nend our soul and spirit. Amen.</p>

<p>O beloved church of God, take care of my three poor, dear
little orphans, that are without parents, without possession,
or inheritance.</p>

<p>Adieu, my dear children; adieu, all my friends. This is
going before you all, and following after my Lord Christ, in
His footsteps. Lord, assist Thy servants unto the last,
unworthy and unprofitable though they be.</p>

<h2>THIS IS WHAT HENDRICK ALEWIJNS DELIVERED TO THE LORDS AT THE RACK</h2> 

<p>Most worthy officers, justiciaries, and all my lords, who in
the name and by the authority of the king are to be my judges
and examiners, and are present here, give audience to me, the
condemned, Hendrick Alewijns, now ready here for the torture,
through your sentence. Behold, I find myself inwardly
constrained, and incessantly urged, not to neglect to point out
and make known to you all the outrages committed by you on me
and those like me, who are innocent of wicked crimes and have
not merited legal punishment.</p>

<p>In the first place, let it be clearly, sacredly and
Scripturally shown, announced and declared to you, that our, or
my matters, are not misdeeds or crimes, but a law of God,
matters of faith, and of the spirit; hence they ought to and
must be judged spiritually and with the spirit, for a natural
man cannot comprehend them; they are foolishness to him. I
Corinthians 2:14. Consider this freely and thoroughly.</p>

<p>In the second place, a Christian must be charged with
articles of faith, and with the Scriptures, with-</p>

</div><div id="751"> 

<p>out being notorious for rebellious deeds of the flesh, as I
am not, God be praised for it, that I am not under the
punishment of justice, but entitled to protection and praise
from the same. Rom. 13:3. Also, that the man of God who seeks
in such simplicity the kingdom, honor and praise of God, is not
amenable to your justice in matters of doctrine and worship.
Concerning this you have doctrine and examples enough. But one
must be subject to the authorities in good works. Tit. 3:1.
Justiciary power is given of God only for the punishment of the
wicked and the praise of the good, and for the protection of
those who do well. The innocent and righteous slay thou not,
says God. Ex. 23:7.</p>

<p>In the third place, there is shown to you clearly and with
the testimony of the holy Scriptures, and this from love and in
the spirit of meekness, the great crime of the tyrants who in
this matter of the innocent, sin against God Himself, and in
His people touch the apple of His eye, yea, fight against God,
and kick against His goads: likewise your certain woe, doom and
career, in the time to come, when our Lord and righteous Prince
shall sit in judgment, and take all your power away from you,
as is written in Judith, "Woe to the nation that rises up
against my kindred; for God will take vengeance on you in the
day of judgment; he will put fire and worms in their flesh,
that they shall be burned, and feel it forever." Judith 16:17.
They shall have no resurrection to eternal life. II Macc. 7:14.
God will not spare them. II Esd. 15:25. They shall groan and be
terrified and amazed at the appearing of the children of God,
seeing their glory, and shall say, "These are they whom we
distressed, oppressed, and deprived them, as being mad, erring
spirits, of honor, possessions and life." And further, "The
wicked troubleth the righteous; he draws out his sword, and
bends his bow. But the Lord laugheth at him; for he seeth that
his day is coming; he helpeth the poor and needy. He slayeth
the righteous; but his sword shall, enter his own heart, and
his bow be broken in pieces." Ps. 37:12.</p>

<p>Christ Himself reproves, condemns and threatens all these
bloodguilty ones, saying, "How can ye escape the damnation of
hell?" Matt. 23:33.</p>

<p>Thus also St. James reproves and laments most grievously,
that they have condemned and killed the just, who did not
resist them. Jas. 5:6. Not in vain it is written in Isaiah, "Woe
to you spoilers! Think ye that ye shall not also be spoiled?
And ye despisers! Think ye that ye shall not also be despised?
When ye shall have made an end of spoiling and despising, ye
shall also be spoiled and despised, saith the Lord." Isa. 33:1.
Therefore, my lords, let it engage your hearty consideration;
for it is not I that have written it. Like Gamaliel (Acts
5:35), let me, weak man, who am nevertheless a witness of the
word, and truth of God, give you a friendly warning. This
vengeance of God was understood and experienced by the cruel
king and mighty tyrant, and he felt that it is an evil thing to
ouch the people of God, because of the help of their God, whose
vengeance no one can escape, if any wrong is done to his
people. II Macc. 1. This order he sent in great haste to all
his governors, "Desist from this people." Holofernes would not
understand nor believe this instruction and warning of the wise
Achior. Judith 5.</p>

<p>My lords, accept in good part this my favor to you. I have
not done it in order to be absolved from the sentence
pronounced, which is not customary, and hardly in your power,
and you yet remain the friend of the world and the king, which
you are determined at any rate to remain. James 4:4; John
19:12. But I pray you nevertheless, to deal mercifully with me,
however, as far as is consistent with the proper course of the
sentence imposed by you, and as you can answer for it at court.
It is better that I suffer, than you; for I know why I suffer.
I suffer for a good conscience toward God, and this is
acceptable with God; and I am a partaker of Christ's
sufferings. I Pet. 2:19; 4:13. I am tortured in order to make
me speak contrary to the great commandment of love (Matt.
22:38); but love doeth no evil; love endureth all things,
beareth all things, and doth not become weary. I Cor. 13:7. O
my lords, think whether it is not so. The wicked can appease
you with lies, and say no when it is yes, and yes when it is
no; but we can only suffer and speak the truth. Have compassion
therefore; yea, as you would that it shall be done unto you
when my judge will come, when you will be greatly afraid, and
stand in need of help. May God forgive you all wrong against
me, as I forgive you, and as I would have it done to me in
regard to all my sins. Amen.</p>

<p>O wise counsel of Gamaliel I where art thou heeded now? In
this the children of God are manifest, and the children of the
devil: whosoever doeth not righteousness is not of God. I John
3:10."Wide is the gate, and broad is the way, that leadeth to
destruction, and many there be which go in thereat." Matt.
7:13.</p>

<br />

<h1>A FATHERLY FAREWELL, TESTAMENT AND VERY CAREFUL SCRIPTURAL 
INSTRUCTION BY HENDRICK ALEWIJNS TO HIS CHILDREN</h1> 

<h2>ARTICLE I</h2> 

<p>The scriptural paternal farewell, testament and an earnest
instruction from Hendrick Alewiins to his children</p>

<p>Hear me, your father, O my own, well-disposed, dear and
greatly afflicted orphans, my three motherless and soon also
fatherless children, of ten, eight, and six years, deprived of
me, and without property, alas, O God! Once more I tell you, O
my dear children, from one dear mother I received and kept you
all; who most solemnly charged me at her end, as also the holy
Scriptures teach and enjoin me concerning you, that I should,
as becomes a father, bring you up in divine instruction (Eph.
6:4), to be good and orderly children and men of</p>

</div><div id="752"> 

<p>God, which I have hitherto, as became me, done with great
carefulness and earnestness, but have not yet completed it. And
behold, now my labor is taken away, and I cannot under these
circumstances further fulfill towards you my fatherly love and
debt of discipline. I have therefore now faithfully commended
you henceforward to the God of heaven and to my fellow
believers, the friends; and I am fully confident that you will
be well, very well, taken care of, out of love, for God's sake
and mine.</p>

<p>Be subject most obediently, as dear children, to the
friends, and you will endear yourselves to them all. I have
charged them with the guardianship over you, as though they
were your parents; hence be very obedient; fear words, and you
will not need stripes. Otherwise you will have to be beaten and
chastised much, as the holy Scriptures require and teach, of
which I shall write more explicitly hereafter.</p>

<p>My dear little children, it is true, it is true I say, you
are yet too childish, the oldest as well as the youngest, to
understand the holy Bible, and also that which I shall teach
here; but I hope you <i>will</i> delight in reading in it
frequently, and to have others read it to you. I also trust
that your understanding will increase from day to day and that
you will yourselves discern good and evil, and will wisely
learn to know who are the true believers, and who the
unbelievers; which are the children of God, and which are the
children of the devil and the world; who bear the name of
Christ justly, and who unjustly. I therefore write in this
hope, and to acquit myself of the duty of fatherly instruction,
which is still to be discharged towards you, and to the
fulfillment of which much is lacking on my part, since I am
taken away from you too soon, fully to discharge it.
Nevertheless, I cannot forbear, through love, to offer and send
you this from afar, my dear children, if peradventure I must
shortly go with David the way of all this mortal earth. I Kings
2:2. Hence I instruct, enjoin, and counsel you after my
departure, as many patriarchs and holy fathers did to their
children, that you will be of good cheer and courage in
patience, and that you will follow the ways, commandments,
laws, and ordinances of the Lord, and do His whole will. Always
do what is right and good; love honesty, modesty, courtesy,
shame-facedness, virtue, praise (Phil. 4:8); and whatsoever is
Christian-like and of good report, that do and think on it, and
you will be holy and Christians. Then you shall have
everlasting life and the beautiful heaven, that you may be with
God and His angelic host, with all the elect of God, in eternal
rest and joy of your souls; and you shall then not have to fear
the second death, the fiery lake, eternal fire, the wages of
sin, disinheritance from Christ's kingdom, or exclusion by
Christ. Matt. 25:10.</p>

<p>My dear children, lay this to heart. As soon as your little
understanding can comprehend it, think of returning from the
old rebellious man into the new man (Matt. 18:3); of the
heavenly regeneration of water and of the Spirit (John 3:35);
of the grace of God and improving the right time (II
Corinthians 6:1, 2); of living peaceably with all men, if it be
justly possible and lying in you (for the other half of peace
lies with the other party); and also of holiness, without which
no man shall see the Lord, or enter into Christ's kingdom. Rom.
12:18; Hebrews 12:14.</p>

<p>This, my dear children, is my careful counsel and command to
you, after my decease.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE II</h2> 

<p class="c25">The first foundation of virtue, or instruction
concerning the beginning of wisdom in childhood - Government of children</p>

<p>Behold, my dear children, since you are still children in
understanding, young in years, and little fitted for the
knowledge of God, I now show you for the first, how you may
attain to the foundation of virtue, and the beginning of
wisdom, that is</p>

<p>Give good audience, and cry earnestly for wisdom, and ask
for it; and gladly receive all good instruction from those who
advise you for the best. For, behold, thus Sirach teaches, "Keep
only with such as fear God, whom thou knowest to keep God's
commandments, who are minded as thou art, who have compassion
on thee, if thou stumble; and abide b their counsel [he says,
abide by their counsel, for thou shalt find no more faithful
counsel, and such an one can often see something better than
seven watchmen that sit about in a high tower, Sir. 37:12.
Again, "The true beginning of wisdom is the desire of
discipline." Wisd. 6:17. And again, "Whoso loveth instruction
loveth knowledge: but he that hateth reproof is brutish." Prov.
12:1. Again, "The ears that heareth the reproof of life abideth
among the wise. And he that refuseth correction despiseth his
own soul: but he that heareth reproof getteth understanding."
15:31, 32. Moreover, "He is in the way of life that keepeth
instruction: but he that refuseth reproof erreth." 10:17.
Again, "A reproof entereth more into a wise man than an hundred
stripes into a fool." 17:10. Behold, my dear children, open
your ears, and receive instruction, and you shall become wise
and honorable; if not, you must remain unwise, ungodly, worldly
and in error, as follows here, "Poverty and shame shall be to him that refuseth
instruction: but he that regardeth reproof shall be honored."
13:18.</p>

<p>Again, "He that hateth to be reproved is already in the way
of the ungodly." Sir. 21:6. Again, "An ungodly man will not be reproved, but excuseth himself
by the example of others .in what he doeth." 32:17.</p>

<p>Behold, my dear children, what excellent instructions these
are. Here you hear good counsel, how you can attain to virtue.
And this you can do without many stripes of the rod, if you but
attend to words, and fear your people in all they command</p>

</div><div id="753"> 

<p>you. Be very obedient to the people with whom you live, and
beware of your innate evil nature, your wildness, your
foolishness and childishness. Abandon that for which you are
chastised; else you will have to be severely beaten without
ceasing; for this belongs to foolish, froward and disobedient
children, as follows here, "Foolishness is bound in the heart of a child; but the rod of
correction shall drive it far from him. Prov. 22:15. The rod
and reproof give wisdom, but a child left to himself bringeth his mother to shame."
29:15. Again, "Train up a child in the way he should go: and
when he is old, he will not depart from it." 22:6."Withhold not
correction from the child: for if thou beatest him with the
rod, he shall not die. Thou shalt beat him with the rod, and
shalt deliver his soul from hell." 23:13, 14. Again, "Hast thou
children? instruct them, and bow down their neck from their
youth. Hast thou daughters? have a care of their body, and do
not spoil them." Sir. 7:23, 24."He that loveth his son causeth
him oft to feel the rod, that he may have joy of him in the
end. He that chastiseth his son, shall have joy in him, and
shall rejoice in him among his acquaintance." 30:1, 2.</p>

<p>Behold, my children, this is what is said with regard to
disobedient children. Thus must children be brought up by
God-fearing parents, the good with words, the evil with rods.
Thus did 7'obit with his son; thus was Susannah from her youth
brought up in the fear of God; and to Abraham it was counted
for righteousness that he should admonish his children to the
fear of God after him. Sus. 2; Tob. 1:9; Gen. 18:19.</p>

<p>In short, this is the conclusion, "Children, obey your
parents in all things: for this is well-pleasing unto the Lord.
And, ye parents, be not bitter against them, lest they become
dull, shy, or discouraged." Col. 3:20, 21; Eph. 6:1.</p>

<p>See, my dear children, learn here what is becoming to you;
see here, with what heavy duty of instruction and correction
Christian parents are charged with regard to their
children.</p>

<p>Those who neglect their children in regard to this
discipline, and are too indulgent toward them, may remember the
terrible example of evil recompense exhibited in Eli, the
priest, who for this reason, by the hand of God, fell from off
his seat backward, and brake his neck. I Sam. 4:18. Hence it is
a grievous matter badly to bring up froward children,
concerning which Sirach says, "He that is too indulgent with his
child lamenteth his stripes, and is terrified as often as he
cries. A wanton child becometh willful, like a wild horse.
Cocker thy child and he shall make thee afraid: play with him,
and he will bring thee to heaviness. Laugh not with him, lest
thou have sorrow with him, and lest thou gnash thy teeth in the
end. Give him no liberty in his youth, and wink not at his
follies. Bow down his neck while he is young, and beat him on
the sides [he says beat him on the sides] while he is a child,
lest he wax stubborn, and be disobedient unto thee. Instruct
thy child, and suffer him not to go idle, lest thou be brought
to shame through him." Sirach 30:7-13. Behold, what a solemn
charge the believer has concerning his children, and also those
that are committed to him as his own children. Hence, dear
lambs, endure kind correction, and be afraid of words, and you
will not have to suffer this severe cruelty: otherwise you must
suffer it, as has been heard.</p>

<p>Behold, my children, in these holy instructions in
correction I acquit myself of my duty towards you; and in all
this I admonish you not only in your youth, but also in your
riper years, to give ear to the advice of the wise and pious,
and always to love the Christians, God's dear children, the
holy church, which by all men is considered a heresy, because
they so firmly hope in the living God. Acts 24:14. Learn to
know early in the Scriptures this living God of them that
believe; for, says the apostle Paul, he that cometh to God must
believe that there is a God, and that He will greatly reward
those who, through the strait gate, seek Him with such
hardships, on the narrow way of tribulation. I Tim. 4:10; Heb.
11:6.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE III</h2> 

<p class="c25">Brief instruction concerning God, to learn to
know Him, by His written name, glory, handiwork, wonderful deeds, voice, 
omnipotence, omniscience, by His enemies, and the enemy of His enemies, 
and the faithful succorer of the pious, etc.</p>

<p>Mark, beloved, my simple children, this in the God of your
father, the God of all the faithful, from the beginning of the
world until now, the God of Abel, the God of Noah, the God of
Abraham, Isaac, Jacob, Israel, the God of Jesus Christ, and of
all the saints. And this is the God that is not made or
worshiped by any man or by human hands, but the God that was
from everlasting and before all things, and shall be forever,
the God of whom and by whom all things are created and made,
yea, heaven, earth, sea, and all the works that therein are,
were made by His word, Spirit and omnipotence. This our God is
good to the good, and very terrible to His enemies. His power
extends over all kingdoms and kings, and He is the Lord of
lords. There is none like unto Him. Thou art great, and Thy
name is great, and Thou canst show it by the deed. Who should
not fear Thee, Thou King of the heathen? Thou shouldest
certainly be obeyed. His name is Governor, Lord, Lord Sabaoth,
the God of Abraham, Isaac, Jacob, Israel, and of the fathers;
this is His name. His name is Wonderful, Counsellor, Power,
Giant, the everlasting Father, the Prince of Peace, His
government abideth upon Him forever. Isa. 9:6, 7. His name is
Immanuel, that is, God with us. 7:14. It is not possible fully
to express His name; hence, for the completion of His
impossible, unmention-</p>

</div><div id="754"> 

<p>able, inexpressible exalted name, He is further called
Jehova, Shadai, Addonai, and by other names. Besides His
general appellations, He is also called: Righteous, Merciful,
Gracious God, Truth, Light, Right Hand, Holy consuming
Fire.</p>

<p>See, my dear children, here you have heard of your father's
God, of His eternity without beginning and without end, and of
His glorious and exalted names in the Holy Scriptures. There
follows further now, of His glorious, incomprehensible,
immeasurable greatness, glory and the invisibleness of His
divine shape, form and image; for God is a Spirit. Think, how
great He must be</p>

<p>heaven is the throne and the earth His footstool. Acts 7:49.
He sees, hears, and is, everywhere, and in all places: for thus
He says through Jeremiah, "Am I a God at hand, and not afar off? Can any hide himself
in secret places that I shall not see him? Do not I fill heaven
and earth? saith the Lord." Jeremiah 23:23, 24. And in another
place the Scripture declares, "He spanneth heaven with his three
fingers." Isa. 40:12. When He walks, the mountains tremble, and
the foundations of the earth quake. When He manifests Himself,
or permits Himself to be heard, He causes fear and terror to
come upon all men, as we read in Ex. 3, that the thorn bush
seemed to burn as a flame of fire when He called Moses to Him,
to make him a prince over Israel, to lead them out of Egypt.
And again, when Moses, while receiving the law of God, spoke
with God on Mount Sinai, the mount smoked, because the Lord
descended upon it in fire; and the smoke thereof ascended as
the smoke of a furnace, and the whole mount quaked greatly. And
the voice of the trumpet waxed louder and louder, with thunders
and lightnings, which frightened the people. And also Moses was
terrified, and trembled. No one was permitted to touch the
mount; no one could endure His voice, save Moses, however, with
fear. Ex. 19. Thus does God show Himself, says Moses, that His
fear should be before your eyes, and you might not sin. Well
may Moses say, "The Lord your God is God of gods, and Lord of
lords, a great God, a mighty, and a terrible, which regardeth
not persons, nor taketh reward." Deut. 10:17.</p>

<p>Behold, my dear children, this great God alone is worthy to
be feared, who can kill soul and body. Sirach says, "The whole
heaven everywhere, the sea and the earth tremble; mountain and
valley quake, when he visiteth them; and shall he not see thy
heart?" Sir. 16:18.</p>

<p>Again, "God is witness of all thoughts, and knoweth the
conscience of every heart, and heareth every word. For the
circuit of the world is full of the Spirit of the Lord [he says
that the circuit of the world is full of the Spirit of the
Lord], and he that knoweth the voice is everywhere; therefore
he that speaketh unrighteous things cannot be hid." Wisd. 1:6.
Yea, my dear children, He knows who serves Him in appearance
and in. the sight of the eyes, and who with a sincere heart.
For the wisdom of God is great, and He is mighty, says Sirach,
and beholdeth all things; and His eyes are upon them that fear
Him, and He knoweth well, what is done in righteousness, and
what is hypocrisy. Sir. 14: 18. I say He is worthy that men
should fear Him, keep His commandments, love Him, be very small
and humble before Him, and this is what He requires of His
people. Read Mic. 6, the law of Moses, and the Gospel of
Christ. For He would have obedience, and not the pomp and
deceitful semblance of sacrifices, as is exemplified in Saul, I
Sam. 15:22."Will ye not fear me, saith the Lord, who have
placed the sand for the bound of the sea, that it cannot pass
it?" Jeremiah 5:22.</p>

<p>Ali, ah, dear children, how good is this fear of the Lord,
for it is the beginning of wisdom. It is the root of wisdom,
and its branches flourish forever. Wisd. 1:20.</p>

<p>This fear of the Lord driveth out sin; for he that is
without fear cannot be justified. Wisd. 1: 21. For by the fear
of the Lord men depart from evil. Proverbs 16:6. The fear of
the Lord is a fountain of life to depart from the snares of
death, 14:27. For those that fear the Lord, my children, walk
in the right way; but he that feareth Him not, or despiseth
Him, departeth from His way. 14:2.</p>

<p>Hereby, and by the vain boasting or thinking of having the
fear of God, you may perceive the fear of God, and know those
who fear Him [and them that fear Him not].</p>

<p>Read who are the truly God-fearing; Ps. 1:2; 119:120; Sir.
2:17; 15:1; 16:2. Therefore, the fear of God is the sum and
conclusion of all books. Read Eccl. 12:13. And as you have now
heard of the great glory of God, which is well worthy that men
should fear Him on account of it, so I will now briefly show
that He is also a most awful, terrible and inexorably stern
avenger and enemy towards His enemies; and, on the other hand,
a faithful succorer of His afflicted friends, as is written in
Exodus, "I the Lord thy God am a jealous God, visiting the
iniquity of the fathers upon the children unto the third and
fourth generation of them that hate me." And again, "Shewing
mercy unto thousands of them that love me, and keep my
commandments." Exodus 20:5, 6.</p>

<p>Notice also the wonderful deeds of God in Egypt, on Pharaoh,
who afflicted the children of Israel; how God afflicted the
Egyptians in return, visiting their land with manifold plagues.
Ultimately, how God delivered His people out of it, made a dry
passage through the Red Sea, separated and protected them from
Pharaoh by the dark pillar of cloud, and terrified Pharaoh and
his host with a heavenly noise in the air, and drowned them all
in the Red Sea, as a God of great power. Now when Israel had
passed through the Red Sea, and was in the wilderness, King
Amalek came to afflict them, whom God Himself resisted,
however, through Joshua, and the enemy and his people were
discomfited and destroyed. Thus, again, in the</p>

</div><div id="755"> 

<p>days of Joshua, God fought with hailstones, and Israel with
the sword; the sun and moon for their benefit stood still the
whole .day, as long as the battle lasted. Josh. 10. Yea, God
also fought from heaven against Sisera, and the stars in their
courses fought. Judg. 5:20. Again, at another time, when
Samaria was besieged by the Syrians, God fought for Samaria,
and terrified the enemies with a noise in the air, as the noise
of chariots, horsemen and hosts, in the night, so that they
fled and left everything behind them. II Kings 7:6, 7. Thus
read also of Zerah the Ethiopian, with his host . of a thousand
thousand, of whom not one escaped. II Chron. 14:9. Thus also,
the children of Ammon and Moab, from Syria, afflicted Israel;
and God fought for Israel, while Israel stood still and he
ordered it so that the enemies destroyed one another. II Chron.
20.</p>

<p>In like manner we read concerning Gideon, that God so
ordered it that the enemies, the Midianites, fell upon one
another with their swords, and destroyed themselves, through
the direction of God. Judg. 7:22.</p>

<p>Behold, my dear children, what an awful, inexorable enemy of
His enemies, and faithful and victorious protector of His
friends He is; for when His people went to battle with God's
consent, though they had neither bows, arrows, shields nor
swords, God fought for them and gained the victory. No one
could harm this people, save when they departed from the
commandments of the Lord their God; then God delivered them
into the hand of the enemy. We have a God that helps the Lord
Sabaoth, who delivers from death; thus extol the saints the
help of God. When the people of God, in former times, were
encompassed and assailed with war, and by wicked nations and
kings, and then cried with confidence to this their God for
protection, behold, their God only sent an angel to their
assistance, who was able to direct all and turned not away from
thousands. Read II kings 19:35; Isa. 37:36. Read further II
Macc. 11:10. We further read of five angels of God, armed and
upon horses with bridles of gold, and what great execution they
did. II Macc. 10:29. God sent two angels to Sodom, for the
destruction of the wicked, and the preservation of the good.
And other such examples; read II Macc. 12; Judg. 7:22; I Sam.
14:20; 17:52; II Chron. 20:23.</p>

<p>Behold, my dear children; the faithfulness of God towards
His people, and His terribleness to the wicked, as has been
heard; and this is only a moderate portion; much still remains
to be told of so many examples contained in the holy
Scriptures, and left for our confirmation, that we might hope
in this God, suffer for His sake, and obey Him. However, it
must be understood with a due distinction of times and laws, as
regards the ancient warfares of Israel, the taking of revenge
on enemies, fighting and killing in the time of the law, and
previous to it, which then was done by the will, command,
permission, and also, help, of God, under he Old Testament, it
must not be so, and is now plainly prohibited, by the Word and
example of Christ, Himself God and the Son of God, whose word
must be heard. Prohibited, I say, plainly and clearly enough,
not by men's commandments, but by God Himself; His people are
denied and forbidden all revenge, and commanded to commit all
vengeance unto God; not to resist evil; to give to him that
taketh away the cloak also the coat, and to turn to him that
smiteth thee on thy right cheek the other also, and the like;
yea, to love one's enemies, to pray for your persecutors, and
to flee from them from one city into another. Matt. 5:39; Rom.
12:17; I Thess. 5:15. And they that are thus afflicted shall be
blessed, and greatly comforted of God, with the promise of
eternal life. In short, not to fight at all, and yet to fight,
but this no longer with iron, steel, stone, wood, or any carnal
weapons, but with spiritual weapons, mighty before God. II Cor.
10:4. Read, my children, what weapons and warfare Christians
now wield, as is plainly and very clearly set forth. Eph. 6.
Christians have no other warfare at the present time. For,
understand, the prophecy is fulfilled which said with reference
to this time, that such people have ,beaten their swords into
ploughshares, and their spears into sickles, rest from their
works, and truly observe the spiritual Sabbath. Isa. 2:4; Mic.
4:3; Ex. 20:10, 11. Hence Christians may now not wage war any
more. However I refer you to ancient warfare and God's succor,
as these are a demonstration and proof to you of the greatness
and the terrible deeds of God; in order that you may learn to
know, fear and obey Him in whose presence the earth shakes, and
the mountains tremble; for the disobedient toward His Word,
will and commandment shall find no hiding place from His face
when He shall appear with His angels, in flames of fire, to
execute vengeance on all the disobedient. II Esd. 16:9.</p>

<p>Therefore, my children, learn to know and shun sin; for
because of sin souls are damned forever.</p>

<h2>ARTICLE IV</h2> 

<p class="c25">What sin is, and whereby sin becomes sin;
and what are and will be the wages of sin, befor
God, or God's punishment of sinners hereafter</p>

<p>What sin is, is clearly shown by the holy Scriptures. The
prophet Samuel said to Saul, when the latter had transgressed
the commandment of the Lord, "Disobedience is as the sin [mark,
sin] of witchcraft." I Sam. 15:23. John says, "All
unrighteousness is sin." I John 5:17. James says, "To him that knoweth to do good, and doeth it not, to him it
is sin." Jas. 4:17. (Mark what sin is). Paul says, "Whatsoever
is not of faith is sin." Rom. 14:23.</p>

<p>From this and the like, my children, learn to know sin; as
Paul says, "By the law is the knowledge of sin. I had not known
sin but by the law."</p>

</div><div id="756"> 

<p>The law causes sin to become exceeding sinful; for when it
says, "Thou shalt not covet," sin takes occasion, and works in
us all manner of concupiscence. Rom. 3:20; 7:7, 13. From this
we also perceive, whereby sin became sin, namely, by the
command and prohibition of God.</p>

<p>Every one who transgresses the things which God has
commanded, commits sin, and it is also called sin, and punished
as sin, fully and abundantly, in both Testaments. The tree of
knowledge was not unclean for Adam, except through the
commandment; his transgression was also called sin. As regards
the punishment for this sin, read Gen. 3:14. The heathen
daughters and wives were not unclean for the Jews, save through
the commandment of God, who would not have it. Concerning the
punishment, read judges 3; Num. 25. The sanctuary, or ark of
God, which was certainly clean, was not unclean for any tribe,
to touch or bear it, except through the commandment. Num. 4:17.
The gods of the heathen were not unclean for Israel, save
through the prohibition and proscription of God, also the
commandment and punishment. I Kings 15.</p>

<p>Behold, thus you can perceive whereby sin becomes sin,
namely, through the commandment, and the transgressing of the
commandment; for where no commandment is, there is no sin, for
without the law sin was dead. Rom. 4:15; 7:8. For sin, or
sinful action was in the world; but sin is 'not imputed when
there is no law. Rom. 5:13.</p>

<p>Now, dear children, as soon as you know sin, learn to shun
it as you shun fire; for if you approach sin, it will embrace
you; but the stings and wounds thereof cannot be healed. Sir.
21:2, 3.</p>

<p>Therefore, learn now to understand further, what proceeds
from sin, and what are the wages of sin, for these are
damnation and death. Rom. 6:23. It is enmity against God,
because it is not subject to the law of God. Rom. 8:7. Hence
hear further the terrible, relentless and awful punishment of
God upon sin and sinners, which has ever taken place and will
yet take place. Take heed, my dear children, I counsel you, as
much as you value your souls, to this special, eternal
punishment of sin and sinners. Thus says the Lord, "I have long
time holden my peace; I have been still, and refrained myself:
now will I cry like a travailing woman; I will destroy and
devour at once. Who among you, he says, will give ear to this?
Who will hearken and hear for the time to come? The day of the
Lord cometh, cruel both with wrath and fierce anger, to lay the
land desolate: and he shall destroy the sinners thereof out of
it. It is the day of the Lord's vengeance, and the year of
recompense for the controversy of Zion. And the streams thereof
shall be turned into pitch, and the dust thereof into
brimstone, and the land thereof shall become burning pitch. It
shall not be quenched night nor day." I sa. 42:14, 23; 13:9;
34:8, etc.</p>

<p>This impending calamity, the punishment and righteous
judgment of God, was announced and promised a very long time;
for when Enoch, the seventh from Adam, was upon earth, he
said, "Behold, the Lord cometh with ten thousand of his saints,
to execute judgment upon all, and to convince all that are
ungodly among them of all their ungodly deeds which they have
ungodly committed, and of all their hard speeches which ungodly
sinners have spoken against him." Jude 14, 15.</p>

<p>Mark, that God threatens and gives sufficient warning
before, as He did to Assur."Woe be unto thee, Assur, thou that
hidest the unrighteous in thee! O thou wicked people, remember
what I did unto Sodom and Gomorrah; whose land lieth in clods
of pitch and heaps of ashes; even so also will I do unto them
that hear me not, saith the Almighty Lord." II Esd. 2:8, 9.</p>

<p>The Son of man shall send forth His angels, and they shall
gather out of His kingdom all things that offend, and them
which do iniquity, and shall cast them into a furnace of fire.
Matt. 13:41, 42. Then shall the Lord say unto them on His left
hand, "Depart from me, ye cursed, into everlasting fire, prepared
for the devil and his angels: for I was a hungered, and ye gave
me no meat; I was thirsty, and ye gave me no drink." Matt.
25:41, 42. Behold, my dear children, thus shall it then go with
those who do not now while it is time, regard this, being rich,
filled and merry. For Christ says, "Woe unto you that are rich,
for ye have received your consolation. Woe unto you that are
full! for ye shall hunger. Woe unto you that laugh now! for ye
shall mourn and weep. Woe unto you, when all men shall speak
well of you!" Luke 6:24-26. When they lived, says Esdras, and
received God's benefits they did not regard it; they despised
his counsel while they had yet liberty, and contemned
repentance; therefore they must know it after death by torment.
II Esd. 9:10-12. While we lived and committed iniquity, we
considered not that we should suffer for it after death. 7:56.
For the wages of sin is death. Rom. 6:23. But, after thy
hardness and impenitent heart, thou treasurest up unto thyself
wrath against the day of wrath, and revelation of the righteous
judgment of God, who will render to every man according to his
deeds; to them who by patient continuance in well-doing, seek
for glory, and honor, and immortality, eternal life; but unto
them that are contentious, and do not obey the truth, but obey
unrighteousness; indignation and wrath, tribulation and
anguish, upon every soul of man that doeth evil. Rom.
2:5-9.</p>

<p>Understand again, my dear children, into what great danger
our evil flesh plunges us here, slaying the soul. The lust and
works of the flesh cause eternal sorrow and loss of heaven. As
Paul says, "Walk in the Spirit, and ye shall not fulfill the lust of
the flesh. For the flesh lusteth against the Spirit, and the
Spirit against the flesh; and these are contrary the one to the
other; so that ye cannot do the things that ye would. Now the
works of the flesh are these; adultery, fornication,
uncleanness, lasciviousness, evil lusts"-(read to the end of
the</p>

</div><div id="757"> 

<p>seventeen points mentioned). And he says that they which do
such things shall not inherit or possess the kingdom of God.
Gal. 5:,16; I Cor. 6:9. Then it shall not be possible for any
one to be spared from the vengeance of God, whether he know
God, or whether he know Him not; if he has been disobedient to
the Gospel, he must bear the severity of God. For Paul
says, "When the Lord Jesus shall be revealed from heaven with
his mighty angels, in flaming fire, taking vengeance on them
that know not God, and that obey not the Gospel of our Lord
Jesus Christ; [mark] who shall be punished with everlasting
destruction from the presence of the Lord, and from the glory
of his power; when he shall come to be glorified in his saints,
and to be admired in all them that believe." II Thess.
1:7-10.</p>

<p>To disobey the Gospel, is worthy of no small punishment; for
he that, in the sight of two or three witnesses, transgressed
the law of Moses (which is inferior to the Gospel in its saving
power and operation, Rom. 8:3), had to die without mercy, says
Paul, of how much sorer punishment, suppose ye, shall he be
thought worthy, who hath trodden under foot the Son of God, and
hath counted the blood of the covenant, wherewith he was
sanctified, an unholy thing, and hath done despite unto the
Spirit of grace? Heb. 10:29. These must expect a terrible
judgment, and the cruelty of the fire, which shall devour the
adversaries. It is a fearful thing to fall into the hands of
the living God; for God is a consuming fire. 10:31; 12:9. We
know Him that hath said,"Vengeance belongeth unto me, I will
recompense." 10:30. See, since the Gospel is great of value and
rich in saving power, therefore, on the other hand, the
refusing, abusing, despising and transgressing of the same, is
as much the greater crime and ingratitude, and deserving of
sorer punishment, as Paul says, concerning Christ, "See that ye refuse not him that speaketh; for if they
escaped not who refused him that spake on earth, much more
shall not we escape, if we turn away from him that speaketh
from heaven: whose voice then shook the earth." Heb. 12:25,
26.</p>

<p>O my children, therefore this time of the Gospel, in which
we now are, is a very precious, valuable and acceptable time,
as also the Lord Himself frequently declares in the Gospel,
as, "Had such mighty works been done in Tyre and Sidon. Why do
ye not discern this acceptable time for you? Blessed are the
ayes which see the things that ye see." Luke 10:23. Jesus
says, "Jerusalem shall be destroyed [on account of her sins];
because they did not know the time of their visitation." Luke
19:44.</p>

<p>O my dear children, learn to discern good from evil; learn
to know the wicked world, who think that they are holy men,
Christians and believers in God, but are the synagogue of Satan
(Rev. 2:9); which is evident from their whole spirit, life, and
their wickedness; who because of their wickedness cannot bear,
or tolerate among them, the lustre of he pious. But the Lord
knoweth how to deliver the godly out of temptation, and to
reserve the evil and unjust unto the day of judgment to be
punished; but chiefly them that walk after the flesh in the
lust of uncleanness. What God intends to do with such, He has
typified and shown to us by sinners of former times [as we
read], "For if God spared not the angels that sinned, but cast
them down to hell, and delivered them into chains of darkness,
to be reserved unto judgment, and spared not the old world, but
saved Noah the eighth person, a preacher of righteousness,
bringing in the flood upon the world of the ungodly; and
turning the cities of Sodom and Gomorrah into ashes condemned
them with an overthrow, making them an example unto those that
after should live ungodly." II Pet. 2:4-6.</p>

<p>Understand here, that God spares neither the angels, nor the
whole world, because they were great in number or highly
esteemed and chosen; and thus it has often gone with great
numbers, for the ungodly are not the better for being many. As
also Sirach well says, "Rely not upon this that the multitude of
those with whom thou doest evil is great, but remember that
punishment is not far from thee. Therefore humble thyself from
the heart, for the vengeance of the ungodly is fire and worms."
Sirach 7:17, 18. For as one that cometh nigh wild beasts, and
is torn by them, so it also goes with him that attacheth
himself to the ungodly, and mingleth in their sins. 12:13, 14.
One child that fears the Lord is more acceptable to Him than a
thousand that are ungodly. Hence let no one depend upon this
that his companions in wickedness are many nor upon boasting of
the mercy of God, before thy repentance; for when the fire of
the punishment of God is kindled, it consumes all the wicked,
great and small. Behold, the fire burned up the whole
congregation of the ungodly; and wrath was kindled over the
unbelieving. He spared not the old giants who perished with
their strength. Neither did He spare those among whom Lot
sojourned, but condemned them because of their pride, and
destroyed the whole land without mercy, who had transgressed
all bounds in sinning. Thus He took away six hundred thousand,
because they were disobedient. How then should a single one
that is disobedient escape unpunished? For though He is
merciful, yet also wrath is with Him. He can be appeased, but
He also fearfully punishes. As His mercy is great, so is also
His correction; He judgeth a man according to his works. The
ungodly shall not escape with his spoils, and the patience of
the godly shall not be frustrated. Behold, before God a great
multitude is of little avail. He that sinneth must die. For
every one that is proud in heart is an abomination to the Lord;
though hand join in hand, he shall not be unpunished. Prov.
16:5. The strength of the ungodly is like a heap of tow which
is consumed with fire. The way of sinners is made plain with
stones (it is true), but at the end thereof is the pit of hell.
Sir. 21:9,</p>

</div><div id="758"> 

<p>10. Hell also hath opened wide her mouth, to receive great
and small, prince and multitude. Isa. 5:14. Many be called, but
few chosen: Wide is the gate, and broad the way that leadeth to
destruction, and many there be which walk in it. I further
say', "The great majority will be damned and lost. This is too
clear to be denied." II Esd. 8:3.</p>

<p>Dear children, he that does not fear or believe God, does
not regard these awful assurances and sure threats, as also the
Scripture says, "Such threatening is too far off, and when a
wicked man heareth it, he yet cleaveth to his folly and error."
How truly does Solomon say, "Because sentence against an evil
work is not executed speedily, therefore the heart of the sons
of men is fully set in them to do evil." Though a sinner do
evil an hundred times, and his days be prolonged, yet surely I
know that it shall be well with them that fear God. Eccl. 8:11,
12. I have long time holden my peace, says the Lord; I have
been still, and refrained myself: now will I cry like a
travailing woman; I will destroy and devour at once. Isa.
42:14. When a child is about to be brought forth, the pains of
travail slack not a moment; even so shall not the plagues be
slack to come upon the earth; the world shall mourn, and sorrow
shall come upon it. II Esd. 16:38, 39.</p>

<p>Oh, happy he who always fears; but he whose heart is
hardened shall fall into misfortune, as has been sufficiently
heard. Mark here the longsuffering of God toward sinners; but
He nevertheless eventually punished them. How truly does Paul
say, "God is not mocked." Thinkest thou that I shall always hold
my peace, saith the Lord, that thou dost not fear me at all?
But I will declare thy righteousness, and thy works, that they
are unprofitable. Then when thou shalt cry, let thy companies
deliver thee; but the wind shall carry them away, and vanity
shall take them. Isa. 57:13. The holy Scriptures do justly call
our God a consuming fire. As to what fire this is, read Isa.
10:16; Joel 2:3; Nah. 3:15; Zech. 11:1. Manasses truly says, "O God, thine angry threatening toward sinners is
importable." Man. verse 5. Nahum speaks thus of the fierceness
of the wrath of God, "The mountains quake before him, and the
hills fear. The earth shaketh before him, yea, the whole
circuit of the earth, and all that dwell therein. Who can stand
before his indignation? And who can abide before his anger? His
fury burneth like fire, and the rocks burst in pieces before
him." Nahum 1:5, 6. Micah says, "The Lord cometh forth out of
his place, and will come down, and tread upon the high places
of the earth. And the mountains shall be molten under him, and
the valleys shall be cleft, as wax before the fire, and as the
waters that are poured down a steep place. For the
transgression of Jacob is all this, and for the sins of the
house of Israel." Mic. 1:3-5.</p>

<p>Oh, who could write enough of such scripture admonitions!
Truly, my dear children, behold, he that recognizes the holy
Scriptures, the Bible, as he sure word, testimony, word and
sentence of God, and considers well worthy of belief what is
written in the same concerning God, and especially regarding
His faithful warning against all sin, the promised recompense
for transgression, exemplified in His punishment of sin as
exhibited in many, together with all His strict and solemn
oaths in which He has denied His kingdom to the impenitent, as
has already been mentioned here in part, and will yet briefly
be pointed out; such a man, I say, may well tremble before God,
and with David the skin and hair of his head may shudder. And
if there be but one spark of the fear of God, and faith in His
Word, in his inmost heart, his laughter may and must turn into
weeping till he obtains peace instead of enmity with God. In
the first place I will speak of God's warning against sin.</p>

<p>But, my dear lambs, I am deprived of time further to
complete my purpose and intention. This however was almost
finished, but I intended to improve it and to copy it in a far
more legible and better form. However, it is now done, and I
must and will now disengage myself, and prepare to die, as I
think, in four days. And, behold, my dear children, I rejoice
in this, and am of good cheer in the Lord, and trust not to
spare my body for the truth, but to present it in worship as a
living sacrifice, holy and acceptable unto God. And I trust by
the grace of God, that I have been to you, my dear children, a
father who have set you a good example, in my life and death.
When you attain to the years of understanding, think thoroughly
on it and so follow Christ with me, as He has gone before us,
in all suffering and holiness; and we shall meet again, and
this in eternal joy and in the kingdom of heaven, forever.</p>

<p>My dear children, though you do not live together, love one
another the more ardently, and show your love in whatever way
you can, as by greetings and instructive letters to one
another. Make copies of this little book, so that each of you
three children may have one.</p>

<p>I first send it to you my dear son Alewijn Hendricks,
because you are the oldest. Remember what I have written for
your instruction; communicate it also to your little sisters.
Farewell now, an eternal farewell, my three little orphans.</p>

<p>Written by me, your dear father,</p>

<p>HENDRICK ALEWIJNS.</p><br />

<h1>HERE FOLLOWS A LETTER WRITTEN BY HANS MARIJNS, WHICH HE SENT FROM HIS PRISON TO HIS BELOVED BRETHREN AND SISTERS</h1> 

<p class="c3">Always have God before your eyes.</p>

<p>Grace, peace and joy from God our heavenly Father, wisdom,
righteousness and truth, through Christ Jesus His beloved Son
our Lord and Saviour; together with the comfort and
illumination of the Holy Ghost; these I wish you, much beloved
brethren and sisters in the Lord, as a friendly greet-</p>

</div><div id="759"> 

<p>ing and eternal adieu in this sad world, where nothing is to
be found but every sorrow of heart. I trust to go and rest,
with all the elect saints of God, under the altar, and hope to
wait for you there: to this end may the Lord grant us His
grace, and may He keep me, miserable sinner, unto the end, as I
hope and trust He will do. Amen.</p>

<p>Know, much beloved brethren and sisters in the Lord, that we
are all well yet, the Lord be praised; and it is still the
purpose of us all, to adhere to the holy truth of the Lord all
the days of our life, for which we can never fully thank the
Lord. O dear brethren and sisters, how could we fully thank
Him, that He so loves me unworthy one! I hope by His grace,
that I shall suffer for His holy name, and I trust to hear with
all the beloved saints of God, "Come, ye blessed of my Father
and inherit the kingdom prepared for you from the foundation of
the world." Matt. 25:34. O dear brethren and sisters, what
beautiful promises are given to them that overcome, "That they
shall shine forth as the sun in the kingdom of their Father;
that they shall be of the household of God; that they shall eat
of the hidden manna, and of the tree of life, which is in the
midst of the paradise of God." Rev. 3:12; Matthew 13:43; Eph.
2:19; Rev. 2:17; 2:7.</p>

<p>O why should I write you much; I hope and trust, that you
yourselves are all taught of God. Hence, dear brethren and
sisters, I know of nothing special to write you, save that we
should always take heed well to keep that which is committed to
our trust, that no man take our crown, for Peter says, "The
devil walketh about as a roaring lion, seeking whom he may
devour: whom resist steadfast in the faith." I Tim. 6:20; Rev.
3:11; I Peter 5:8. O we shall be well rewarded, if we hold the
beginning of our confidence steadfast unto the end. Herewith I
will commend you all unto the Lord, and to the rich Word of His
grace, which is able to build us all up for His heavenly
kingdom. Amen. And I kindly pray you, also to see to my child a
little as much as you can. I have also requested this of the
sister at Vlissingen, and of Christian. You may advise together
as is best; for I must now part from it, so that I cannot take
care of it. But I am heartily satisfied with this, and am ready
to forsake not only wife and child, but also body and life, if
the Lord will only keep me, as He has hitherto done, and will
yet do. O dear brethren and sisters, we are all of such good
cheer. I and Hendrick and Gerrit greet you all much. Greet
Hendrick and Maeyken much in my name, and Adrian and Gerrit
Coelemey, and your companion Lieven, and Huybert; further, Yde
and her husband, and Jacob Wit, and the rest of the brethren,
and to all whom it is convenient to greet. Bid them all
farewell in my name. Written on the third of February, in the
year 1569, after I have been advised of my sentence. Farewell
altogether, and be valiant always. I trust that we shall see
one another again. Communicate to Geertgen occasionally
something of the profit, as seems best to you; and do with her
what is best, this I earnestly ask of you.</p>

<p>By me, Hans Marijns, your unworthy brother in the Lord, with
what is in my ability for your best, for this time.</p>

<h2>ANPLEUNIS VAN DEN BERGE, A. D. 1569</h2> 

<p>This Anpleunis van den Berge, because he had permitted, in
the year 1556, that the Word of God was truly and openly
preached on his land, and that he had lodged some of the
brethren, had to leave his own house and property, and conceal
himself, and sojourn with other good friends (so severe was
then the persecution against the Christians), until, finally,
while walking on the road, he was apprehended, and this only
because one who saw him walking, said, "There goes the man who
permitted preaching on his land." And though he offered to give
to the officer that apprehended him his purse containing fifty
pounds Flemish, if he would let him go, he was nevertheless
taken along into prison at Kortrijk, where he, after a bold
confession of his faith, was very severely tortured, by
scourging as well as otherwise; but as he would in no wise
apostatize from his faith, or implicate any of his fellow
members, he was finally sentenced to death, and burned, in the
year 1569, thus obtaining a house and inheritance which shall
never be taken from him. II Cor. 5:1.</p>

<h2>JASPER DEN TASCHRINKMAKER, A. D. 1569</h2> 

<p>At Antwerp, about the year 1569, there was apprehended a
brother, named jasper den Taschrinkmaker, who, when he was
examined concerning his faith, boldly confessed it, and would
allow no entreaties, threats or tortures to swerve him from it,
so that because of his steadfastness he was sentenced to death
as a heretic, and offered up his sacrifice by fire. Hence the
eternal fire shall not destroy that which he has built upon the
foundation Jesus Christ.</p>

<h2>DIRK ANOOT AND WILLEM DE ZAGER, IN THE YEAR 1569</h2> 

<p>When the Duke of Alba tyrannized with great violence against
the Gospel, as Antiochus against the law, II Macc. 7, there
were brought prisoners into Ypres, in Flanders, in the year
1569, one Dirk Anoot, of Westvleteren, and one named Willem, a
woodsawyer, who, as they could in no wise be drawn from the
truth by tribulation, fear, or any suffering inflicted upon
them, were finally condemned and sentenced by the fire, and
were then brought into the marketplace, before the city hall,
with a stick fastened in their mouth, that they should not
speak. There each was placed at a stake and burned. Thus they,
as those who did not love their life, but delivered it up for
the Gospel, offered up their bodies as a burnt sacrifice unto
God, their Lord.</p>

</div><div id="760"> 

<h2>TANNEKEN VAN DER MEULEN, JAECXKEN VAN HUSSELE, AND JAECXKEN TEERLINGS, IN THE YEAR OF OUR LORD 1569</h2> 

<p>At Ghent in Flanders also three sisters were apprehended on
account of the faith, namely Tanneken van der Meulen, Jaecxken
van Hussele, and Jaecxken Teerlings, who had to leave, for, the
Lord's sake, five little children, whom she ommended to a
faithful keeper and Provider, since she had to help her two
imprisoned fellow sisters contend for His name, in which all
three of them evinced such manful courage unto death, that even
the tyrants were amazed at it, who shall be still more amazed,
when they shall hear the sound of the trumpet, and see that
these with all the children of God shall be taken up into
everlasting joy and gladness, while they themselves standing on
the left hand will have to go into everlasting sorrow, and that
the time of repentance shall then be utterly taken away from
them.</p>

<h2>JOOST GOETHALS, ROELANDT AND PIETER STAY ERT, JANNEKEN ROELANDS AND JA14NEXEN DE JONCKHEERE, IN THE- YEAR 1569</h2> 

<p>In the year 1569, at Ghent in Flanders, there were
apprehended for the faith, three brethren and two sisters,
namely, Joost Goethals, Roelandt and Pieter Stayert, Janneken
Roelands and Janneken de Jonckheere. These had to resist many
examinations, trials and temptations, but remained valiant in
everything unto death, so that they were tried as gold in the
fire; nor did that fail which they had built upon the
cornerstone Christ; wherefore they shall, for having been
faithful here over a few things, be made rulers with the good
and faithful servant over many things, and enter into heaven
into the joy of their Lord. Matt. 25:23.</p>

<h2>CHRISTOFFEL BUYZE, LAURENS VAN RENTERGEN, JOOST MEERSSENIER, AND GRIETGEN BAETS</h2> 

<p>Not long after the above there were also apprehended at
Ghent three brethren and one sister, namely, Christoffel Buyze,
Laurens van Rentergen, Joost Meerssenier, and Grietgen Baets.
These, in order to follow Christ, gladly took up His cross, and
had to suffer much reproach, temptation, and pain in the narrow
way; but in all this they courageously persevered, and could in
no wise be induced to apostatize, so that they finally had to
lay down their lives for the name of Christ, and with Him press
through the strait gate, in order that they might take the
kingdom of God by force, where they in the new Jerusalem, shall
have Him for an everlasting light, and shall with all those who
have valiantly contended for the truth, live in everlasting and
imperishable joy.</p><br />

<h2>OLD PIETER, JAN WAITIER, JAN VAN RAES, WOUTER
DENIJS, FRANCAIS THE CARPENTER, AND KALLEKEN, THE WIDOW OF
ANPLEUNIS VAN DEN BERGE</h2> 

<p>As the Jews did to the Shepherd, so their successors do
still to His sheep, which was evident in the year 1569, when
they, having come from Kortrijck to Meenen, apprehended there a
brother named old Pieter; but not yet satisfied with this, they
returned on the Friday before Easter, in the night, and
apprehended Jan Watier, Jan van Raes, Wouter Demjs, Francais
the Carpenter, and Kalleken, the widow of Anpleunis van den
Berge (which latter had previously been offered up). These were
so tightly bound that it was pitiful to behold. Jan Wader
said, "If there is any one here from Komen, greet my wife, and
tell her to fear God." These were then conducted to Kortrijck,
where they lay for three weeks, so closely guarded that no one
could come to them, to comfort or speak to them. They were also
very severely tortured, in order that they should mention
others; but God kept their lips. The old man, Jan van Raes, was
put on the rack twice, but he nevertheless betrayed no one.
When Jan Watier was led back to prison, it was a lamentable
sight to behold how he had been tortured, all his limbs
appearing to have been broken.</p>

<p>When they were led to the court, they said, "Now truth is
fallen in the street, and equity cannot enter." Isa. 59:14.
There they (the five brethren and one sister) comforted and
cheered one another with the Word of God. I Thess. 4:18, There
the innocent were sentenced to be burned, and delivered to the
hangman or executioner. Longing for their Father's land, to be
in peace with Him forever, they boldly came forth, and Pieter
sighed and cast up his eyes, saying, "O Lord, succor Thy
servant, and strengthen him in his last extremity; and do not
account this as sin to them, but convert them; for they know
not what they do." Jan Watier said to the lords, "If we have
done amiss to you in anything, do forgive us; we gladly forgive
you all that you have .done amiss to us; but let the innocent
blood you have shed satisfy you, and do not shed any more."
Pieter said to the people, "If you would enter into life, seek
first the kingdom of God, and His righteousness, and all that
you further need shall be added unto you." Matt. 6:33. He
further said, "This is the strait gate by which we enter in;
here we are going home, where we shall be this evening." Wouter
Denijs said, "O Lord, reprove them with the hammer of thy divine
word, that they may perceive, whom they have pierced, and be
converted." John 19:37. Pieter again said, "These members, which
God has given me, I will gladly surrender for his honor; for
hereafter, when I rise, he shall give them to me again." II
Macc. 7:11.</p>

<p>When they had all finished their prayer, and were standing
bound at the stakes, they confidently</p>

</div><div id="761"> 

<p>exclaimed, "O heavenly Father, into thy hands I commend my
spirit." Thus all these six friends passed through the
conflict, as faithful regenerated children of God, and elect
sheep of Christ, who remained steadfast unto the end, and with
their sacrifice took their blessed departure out of this
world.</p>

<p>Wouter Denijs also wrote several letters from prison, three
of which have come into our hands, and follow here.</p>

<h2>THE FIRST LETTER OF WOUTER DENIJS, TO HIS WIFE</h2> 

<p>A cordial greeting to you, my beloved wife and children, and
to father, and to my brothers, sisters and all my friends
according to the flesh, and to all that are known to me, who
fear God from a pure heart. This fear, from a pure heart, may
the Almighty God grant you through His Son Jesus Christ.</p>

<p>My beloved wife, and my children, whom I love next to God,
lay this to heart, for I have written it with great diligence.
Behold, I think (and know nothing to the contrary) that you
will receive nothing further from me; hence if you would be
saved let my words abide in your ears, I therefore pray you
from the depths of my heart, through Jesus Christ, always to
instruct and admonish my and your children with great diligence
in the fear of _ God, as ..long as the Lord will let you remain
together. I further request you, always to restrain them, lest
they rule over you. You have such a striking example in some
whom I will not mention here, not deeming it best; but I will
let it be as it is</p>

<p>everyone will give an account of himself. Romans 14:12.
Therefore, my dear and beloved, I pray you for Christ's sake,
to walk in the fear of the Lord; and use more diligence in
seeking your salvation, than you have hitherto done; and be not
ashamed to ask questions in matters pertaining to salvation,
but let us be ashamed before the Lord of our misery and
nakedness; for when the Lord visits us, everyone would like to
be found glorious and spotless, and blameless in weakness. For
when one gets into bonds, it is such a blessed thing to have
peace in one's conscience; or even if one should be laid upon
his death-bed. Hence Peter admonishes us, "Let them that suffer
according to the will of God commit the keeping of their souls
to him in well doing, as unto a faithful Creator." I Peter
4:19. And the apostle exhorts us that every one should seek to
excel in good works. Tit. 3:8. Abd Christ says in His
Gospel, "He that forsaketh not lands and house, father and
mother, wife and children, yea, his own life, is not worthy to
be my disciple." Luke 14:26.</p>

<p>Therefore, everyone that would be saved must obey-his
Saviour, as the Word of the Lord everywhere declares. Hence use
diligence to hear and follow the Word of God; for, without the
Word of God salvation cannot be found, however grandly he false
prophets boast themselves. For from the beginning of the world
the righteous had to suffer from the unrighteous, and be
persecuted, for if the Prince of our salvation Himself
suffered, being an example and pattern unto us, that we should
follow Him; we may well see that the servant is not better than
his Lord. Hence let everyone that would be saved make entreaty
to the Lord, from the depth of his heart and with tears,
without ceasing. And I pray you, my dear wife, to teach our
children to read and write, if it be possible for you, in order
that they may be able to search for themselves. John 5:39.</p>

<p>Thus, my dear and much beloved wife, whom next to God I
loved above all men, lay this to heart, and let the same be
done by all that shall see it or hear it read. And I pray you,
brother and sister, and all who truly know Christ, and love His
appearing, that, when they attain to years of understanding,
you will exercise an oversight and care not only over mine, but
all that are in like condition; and charge Hansken at
Proentken's, occasionally to admonish Pieter, and to search
whereunto we are called, and for what testimony his father was
burned at Wervijke, in Flanders. Acts 23:11.</p>

<p>And I beseech everyone that would be saved, not to neglect
the grace of God. Behold, now is the accepted time; behold now
is the day of salvation; let everyone take heed now. On the
twentyfirst day of April, about eleven o'clock, I received a
letter here, which was welcome to me. However, I will pass this
by, and go on. Know that we are still of good courage, and had
I been able, I would have sent you something; but this I send
you all as a greeting, and for a remembrance to my children,
and I request of you who remain there, to keep this till they
attain to their understanding, if it be possible for you, if
peradventure the Lord should grant grace, and knowledge of the
truth, as I trust He will do. I entreat everyone from the depth
of my heart, and with tears, before God, to excuse my weakness
kindly and in love. I deplore it before God and men, that I
have not been more of a light, and that the talent which I have
received has gained so little profit.</p>

<p>Hence everyone may take good heed, and always be watchful;
for I testify before God and men, that I have not lightly come
here. Therefore let everyone take heed, I pray you, that you do
not lightly receive this; for, know that I have not lightly
written it; with this warning I acquit myself of all
responsibility. Let everyone take heed.</p>

<p>Written by me, your husband and dear friend,</p>

<p>WOUTER DENIJS.</p>

<h2>THE SECOND LETTER OF WOUTER DENIJS AND HIS FELLOW PRISONERS, TO HIS BRETHREN AND SISTERS IN THE LORD</h2> 

<p>The unfathomable grace of the Lord Jesus Christ be with all
dear brethren and sisters, and all dear friends who desire to
walk in the true and</p>

</div><div id="762"> 

<p>pleasant fear of the Lord; and with the overseers of the
true bride of Christ; this we wish as a heartfelt greeting,
namely, we brethren and sisters, Jan van Raes, Francais the
carpenter, Jan Watier, of Komen, Old Pieter, Wouter Denijs, and
Kalleken van den Berge, who are in bonds here at Kortrijck for
the testimony of Jesus Christ.</p>

<p>Further, dear friends, we inform you in regard to our first
examination, that we were sharply and severely examined
concerning our brethren, leaders and teachers, as to who they
are, where they live, and what their names are.</p>

<p>Hence we pray you, dear friends, that you do not lightly
inquire concerning one another's names or places of abode; for
when we get into bonds, we have to suffer great distress on
account of it; but the Lord be praised forever, who has
hitherto kept our lips; however, we are greatly threatened with
the torture. We therefore kindly ask you, diligently to entreat
the Lord for us, and for all our brethren that are in bonds at
Ghent, Antwerp, and all other places; that the Lord may
strengthen them. And we heartily ask you, to see to our wives
and children, and to admonish them in the fear of the Lord, as
you should like to have done to yours; and to see that you
protect their property as well as you can. And know that it is
still our purpose to fight through by the grace of the Lord.
Kallaken, and Stijntgen and Jaentgen, her two daughters, are
confined together, and greet you much; and as regards. their
purpose it is also tolerably well with them. But we pray you,
dear friends in the Lord, diligently to search His Word, and to
admonish one another while you are out of bonds; for I fear
that they will yet greatly scatter the church, since they are
still thirsting much for blood, even more than the judge. For
as Jannes and Jambres vehemently withstood Moses, so do these
violently resist the truth. They intend to scatter the whole
flock at Meenen. Hence let every one keep as quiet as he can,
and if you receive any warning, whether verbal or otherwise,
heed it; for if I, Wouter Denijs, had heeded it three or four
nights, I would perhaps not be imprisoned. But I thank the Lord
for His grace; I thought it should cause me far more sorrow;
but now I find that the Lord is wonderful and mighty in His
deeds; He who does not leave His children comfortless, for
which I can never fully praise or thank Him. Pieter heartily
asks the church to forgive him; for what he said was spoken
from great consternation, and the man is wonderfully sorry on
account of it, and has wept many a tear because it happened. We
kindly pray you, to remember us in your prayers, as being
imprisoned with us, for we now much need the prayers of the
saints. And do not lightly receive our letter, for we have good
reason to write this, since we are far more ardent in
remembering our fellow prisoners than we were before we were in
bonds. For you may know how this letter was written, namely,
with a little stick cut off of a counter, and with ink made of
red earth. Further, dear friends, I heartily pray you to
admonish Ariaenken, my wife. Though matters now thus stand with
her, I trust in the Lord, that she will not remain under the
subjection of Egypt with her carnal friends, since she has been
spoken to. I hope for the best.</p>

<p>No more, but farewell; we commend you to God, and to the
Word of His grace.</p>

<p>Written by me, Wouter Denijs, commenced on the nineteenth,
and finished the twentieth, by the grace of the Lord, to whom
be praise and honor forever. Amen.</p>

<h2>A THIRD LETTER OF WOUTER DENIJS AND HIS FELLOW PRISONERS</h2> 

<p>Let everyone take heed, though I do not write much or very
learnedly, which is something that is not in me. Receive this
from me in good part, as I trust you will do. These greetings
and warnings I send to those indicated in my preceding letters,
and further to those who are principally of my acquaintance,
and to all that walk in the fear of God, and love Ws appearing,
and desire to follow this; and I admonish everyone to be
diligent in searching the Word of God. Exhort one another in
love, and copy this for my dear and beloved wife, and preserve
these three letters; this I heartily pray you. Take further
solicitations for your salvation, and let it be read to you
occasionally. Grieve not on my account, but grieve before God
because of your sins. Think not within yourselves, that you are
without sin, but always have an humble estimate of yourselves
before the Lord; for James says, "If any man think that he
serveth God, and bridleth not his tongue, this man's religion
is vain." James 1:9. Therefore, my beloved, comfort yourselves
in the Lord, and think that He has called me hereunto; and I
trust by His power, through the help and strength of Him who
counts me worthy for this, not to depart therefrom for any
torture. And I firmly trust that the Lord counts, and shall
make, me worthy for it; and I shall firmly trust in Him with a
pure heart unto the end; for I may well say hitherto, that the
Lord is showing me, and five or six others with me, such
abundant grace, that it were impossible for me to describe it
with the pen; for we scarcely know of our bonds, but are
together in fervency of spirit. Hence I admonish you all to
pray with greater diligence than I have sometimes done, for the
prisoners, as the apostle exhorts us. Let, therefore, everyone
be diligent to pray in love; for we find that they that are in
bonds pray much more fervently for those who are out of bonds.
Thus I will conclude writing. Let everyone be quick to see how
the life and doctrine of the learned and wise of this world
accord with the life of our Lord, Christ Jesus, our
Saviour.</p>

<p>Herewith I commend you to the faithful Creator, and to the
word of His grace.</p>

<p>Written by me,</p>

<p>WOUTER DENIJS,</p>

<p>And my fellow prisoners</p>

</div><div id="763"> 

<h1>COPY OF A LETTER WRITTEN FROM PRISON, AT ANTWERP, BY A YOUNG WOMAN, NAMED NELLEKEN JASPER, OF BLIJENBERG, WHO LAID DOWN HER LIFE AT THE FORMER PLACE, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST AND HIS DIVINE WORD</h1> 

<p>Grace and peace be from God the eternal and Almighty Father,
through Jesus Christ, who gave Himself for our sins into the
hands of the enemies, and received much suffering from sinners,
that He might deliver us from this evil and perverse world,
according to the will of His Father. To Him be praise, and
honor forever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>This bleeding and crucified Jesus.Christ I wish all dear
brethren and sisters in the Lord, and all those that fear God
from the heart, as a cordial greeting, and endowing of your
mind: Further, my heartily beloved friends: and chosen in the
Lord, please know that my mind is still unchanged; and desire
to adhere to the eternal truth all the days of my life, as long
as there is breath in my body. I am of good cheer; praise,
glory and thanks be to the Lord evermore for the great grace
which He shows me, for I have from the very beginning been of
such good cheer. Yea, He gives such joy into my heart, that I
cannot express it, and I cannot fully thank the Lord for the
great benefits He shows me.</p>

<p>Know further, my dear brethren and sisters in the Lord, that
I was before the lords. There were four of them: the margrave,
two judges, and the clerk of the criminal court. When I entered
the room, I did reverence to them, and the margrave said, "Well,
my daughter how are you?" I replied, "Very well, sir." The
niargrave asked me whether I had not sat myself tired. I
answered, "Yes, my lords, if it were your pleasure to make away with
me, it would be very welcome to me." The margrave said, "How so,
my daughter, you must not speak thus; you must give up your
opinion, and the king will pardon you." I said, "You have put my
father and mother out of the way,. and the two boys, but me you
have left sitting here, which greatly grieves me." The margrave
said, "How so, my daughter; if I should have put you out of the
way with your father and mother, it would not seem good to me;
since you are not yet baptized, the king will pardon you." The
judges asked, "Is she not yet baptized?""No," replied the
margrave. I said, "No; it is true, I am not yet baptized; but if
I were released this evening, I should have it done tomorrow,
if it were possible.." Then they sighed over me, and I
said, "The two boys were likewise not baptized." They
replied, "It is true; they would not desist from their opinion;
efforts enough were made in regard to them." I said,"I will
likewise not depart from my faith." They told me that I should
then not fare better. I said I was well satisfied with it;
though they should roast me on a gridiron, or boil me in oil,
yet I trust by the grace of the Lord not to depart from the
truth, as long as there is breath in me,"and for his," I
said,"I am of good cheer and would rather see it today than
tomorrow." I firmly hope and trust in the Lord, that He will
help me, and have fixed my confidence in His Word, where He
says, "O my chosen, fear thou not; I shall preserve thee in the
fire and in the water, and I shall not suffer thee to be
tempted above that thou art able to bear." Then they
said, "Daughter, you are deceived; your father and your mother
deceived you; they compelled you to it; you were under their
subjection; you did it through fear; but now you are free from
them, and have your own free will; hence, let it go; the king
will pardon you; you are young yet;" and other similar words. I
said that I wanted to keep what I had. They said that I should
advise with myself. I told them that I had my advice with me,
and had sufficiently advised with myself.</p>

<p>They told me to think that they also had a soul, and wanted
to be saved. I told them that there were many who would be
willing to rejoice with Christ, but few that wanted to suffer
with Him. They said that it did not depend on suffering. I said
that Christ Himself had to suffer: how much more we? They did
not reply to this, but said, "Forsake.your opinion; we shall send you learned men into a
little room alone;" and asked me what learned men and
ecclesiastics I wanted. I told them that I did not want any,
but that I wanted to keep what I had. They said that I must be
forever damned if I should die in this condition, and that my
father and mother, and brothers, were glad if they could be
here and repent. I told them that I knew better. We had many
more words, which it would take me too long to write; besides,
I have forgotten much of it. Thus, my affectionately beloved
brethren and sisters, whom I love from my inmost heart, it is
my heartfelt prayer and request of you, that you would entreat
the Lord in my behalf, that I may finish it to the praise of
the Lord, and to my eternal salvation. Amen.</p>

<p>Dear friends, I must yet pass through a great wilderness,
for it is desolate and perilous here; yea, I must yet tread
through thistles and thorns; but the crown of life is prepared
for us; for it is the right truth, and no other shall ever be
found. O my dear lambs, do not depart from the Lord; He will
not permit you to be tempted above that you are able to bear;
for He is a faithful succorer, a strength in weakness, and a
comforter in sorrow to those that are afflicted in heart. Let
us nestle close into His arms, and cast all of our care upon
Him, for He cares for us, and will Himself watch over- us; that
we may partake of the supper with all the saints in heaven,
where Christ Himself will gird Himself, and serve at the table.
Herewith I will commend you to the Lord, and to the mighty Word
of His grace; may the peace of God rule in your hearts. I
heartily greet all our dear brethren and sisters, and all those
that fear God from the heart, with the peace of God.</p>

<p>By me, Nelleken Jasper, a maiden of
Blijenberg, your unworthy sister in the Lord; the 12th of December, A.
D. 1569. Send me a letter occasionally; for it will be very
welcome to me.</p>

</div><div id="764"> 

<h2>NOTICE TO THE CHRISTIAN READER, CONCERNING THE FOLLOWING SENTENCES</h2> 

<p>It is a fact known to those who have read with attention the
history of Holland for the years 1533, 1534, 1535, and some of
the following, that the external condition of the so-called
Defenseless Anabaptists <i>(Weerloose Doopsgesinden)</i> was
very sad and at the same time in a state of confusion; not only
through the severe persecutions by which they were scattered
into every quarter, but especially also through the
insurrection of such as, without being defenseless, also taught
the baptism of adults; because these by falling into abominable
practices, furnished cause that all those who opposed infant
baptism were looked upon by the authorities, as though they
also had part or guilt in such improper and abominable doings.
And since all who taught the baptism of adults were
indiscriminately called Anabaptists, and under this name
persecuted alike, it was sometimes scarcely possible for those
who saved their lives by flight, to know when some were
apprehended or put to death, whether they were of the number of
their defenseless brethren and sisters, or not; as also, how
many they were, and what were their names.</p>

<p>For this reason there were in those years, and, as may be
inferred from history, also in later times, and in divers
places, many pious witnesses put to death, whose number and
names have not been ascertained so clearly, that they could be
placed among the number of their fellow combatants in this
book, to serve as patterns of utmost fidelity in the confession
of the truth, to succeeding generations.</p>

<p>In this number there have also been embraced up to the
present time various men and women who were put to death at
Amsterdam; whose sentences came into our hands, while this
Bloody Theatre was being reprinted; they were obtained from the
book of sentences from said city of Amsterdam, preserved in the
archives there. From these sentences it is clearly evident that
they were not put to death on account of insurrection or any
other misconduct, but simply because they departed from Romish
institutions, opposed infant baptism, and had adopted the
baptism which is administered upon confession of sins, and
faith in Christ our Lord.</p>

<p>Hence we deem it our duty, to make known here also these
persons, and to place them with those with whom they in their
lifetime valiantly fought unto the end under one banner of
Christ Jesus our Lord; and with whom they also rest from their
labors, till the time that they shall together, in the
resurrection, be made partakers of the incorruptible crown of
glory.</p>

<p>We heartily wish that we had been able to give an account
also of their valiant deeds, wise discourses, acts of patience
and resignation, and every thing that took place in connection
with their sufferings and death. However, none of these things
have come to our knowledge, having through the adverse
circumstances of those times, probably never been divulged by
those who could and would have made them known to those
unacquainted with them, or to posterity; even as those
sorrowful times caused this with regard to many martyrs, since
of some it has scarcely been possible to record their number
and the place of their offering.</p>

<h2>Extract from the book of criminal sentences of
the city of Amsterdam, Fol. 48, verso. preserved in the archives there</h2> 

<p>Whereas Grietje Arents, a maiden of Limmen, has had herself
rebaptized, holding pernicious views concerning the sacraments
of the holy church, contrary to the faith and ordinances of
said church, and the written laws and decrees of the Emperor,
our gracious lord; and, moreover, was banished by the Court of
Holland, for the aforesaid reason, from these countries of
Holland, Zealand and Friesland, on pain of death, without that
she, the prisoner, has hitherto manifested a willingness to
repent, but has suffered the time of grace granted by his
imperial majesty to pass by; therefore, the judges, having
heard the demand made against her by the bailiff in behalf of
his imperial majesty, and the answer and confession of the
aforesaid Grietje, and having considered the circumstances of
this case, have condemned said Grietje by sentence to be
executed by water, as has been done by the executioner. Done
the last day of December, A. D. 1534, in the presence of the
whole court.</p>

<p>This Grietje Arents, according to the contents of the
sentence, had first been banished, however, as clearly appears,
for no other reason than that she did not believe like the
Roman church, for which reason also, since she persisted
therein, she was put to death; but why she returned to the
place from which she had been banished, is not known; however,
we may well infer, since nothing else is laid to her charge in
this sentence, that the cause thereof was likewise a matter of
faith and conscience.</p>

<p class="c3">Extract as above, Fol. 49, verso</p>

<p>Whereas Jan Pauw, blockmaker, Arent Janssen of Gorckum,
tradesman, Barent Claessen of Swol, fuller, Jan van Gink,
Hendrich Biesman of Maestricht, Cornelis Willemsse of Haerlem,
cabinetmaker, Arent Jacobssen, Keyser, of Moonickendam, and
Willen Janssen of Zutphen, have had themselves rebaptized, and
have accepted the covenant of the Anabaptists, holding
pernicious views concerning the sacraments of the holy church,
contrary to the faith and ordinances of said church, and the
written laws and decrees of his imperial majesty our gracious
lord; therefore, the judges, having heard the demand made by my
lord the officer concerning them, and their defense and
confession,</p>

</div><div id="765"> 

<p>and having considered the circumstances of the case, have
condemned the aforesaid persons by sentence, to be executed
with the sword and put to death, on the scaffold erected for
this purpose in the marketplace of this city; and, moreover,
their heads to be placed upon stakes, and their bodies upon
wheels, for an example unto others, as was done immediately
afterwards. Done the 6th day of March, A. D. 1535; in the
presence of the whole court.</p>

<p>Concerning Jan Pauw there is still another, separate
sentence, that on the 29th of December, 1534, he was tortured,
by sentence of the judges, in order to learn from him who had
baptized, and who had been baptized at his house; however,
since that sentence contains nothing but this order to torture
him, we have not deemed it necessary to add it here
<i>verbatim.</i></p>

<p><i>Extract as above, Fol.</i> 51</p>

<p>Whereas Jan Jacobssen, of Normandy; inhabitant of this city,
Adriaen Cornelissen of Sparrendam, and Gerrit Claessen of
Oudenyerop, have entered into the covenant of the Anabaptists,
and been rebaptized, holding pernicious views concerning the
sacraments of the holy church, contrary to the holy Christian
faith and the ordinances of said church, and the written laws
and decrees of his imperial majesty our gracious lord;
therefore, my lords the judges, having heard the demand made by
my lord the bailiff, in behalf of his imperial majesty against
the aforesaid persons, and their defense and confession, and
having considered the circumstances of their crime, have
condemned the aforesaid persons by sentence, to be executed
with the sword and put to death, by the executioner, on the
scaffold erected in front of the city hall, of this city, and,
moreover, their heads to be placed upon stakes, and their
bodies upon wheels, for an example to others; as was done by
the executioner; and we furthermore declare their property
confiscated for the benefit of his imperial majesty as count of
Holland, of those who are not citizens of this city, and of the
citizens, to the sum of one hundred pounds, according to the
privileges of this city. Done on the 15th of May A. D. 1535, in
the presence of the bailiff, Ruysch Janssen and Goossen Janssen
Rekalff, burgomasters, and all the judges.</p>

<p>In the public histories of that time mention is made only of
the beheading of three men on that day, without anything evil
being laid to their charge, except simply that they were
counted among the Anabaptists. And since this sentence charges
them with no crime, insurrection, or any misconduct, which in
that time of violence, when that riot at Amsterdam had but
recently happened, would very probably have been done, had
there .been any grounds for it, it can readily be inferred that
these men were pious persons, who are worthy to be placed with
the other faithful soldiers of Christ our Lord.</p>

<p><i>Extract as above, Fol.</i> 51. <i>verso</i></p>

<p>Whereas Baef Claes, a maiden, Grietje Maes; Gerrit's widow,
Barbara Jacobs, a maiden of Haserwoude, Breght Elberts, a
maiden, Adriana Ysbrant, a maiden, Trijn Jans of Munnickendam,
and Lysbeth Jans, a maiden from Benskop, have been rebaptized,
holding pernicious views concerning the sacraments of the holy
church, contrary to the holy Christian faith and the ordinances
of said church, and the written laws and decrees of his
imperial majesty our gracious lord, without that they have
hitherto shown any penitence; therefore, the judges, having
heard the demand made by the bailiff in the behalf of his
imperial majesty against them, and their answer and confession,
and having considered the circumstances of this case, have
condemned the aforesaid persons by sentence, to be executed
with water and put to death by the executioner; as was done by
the executioner; and furthermore declare their property
confiscated for the benefit of his imperial majesty as count of
Holland, of those who are not citizens of this city, and of the
citizens, to the sum of one hundred pounds, according to the
privileges of this city. Done on the 15th of May, A. D. 1535;
in the presence of the bailiff, Ruysch Janssen and Goossen
Janssen Rekalff, Burgomasters, and all the judges.</p>

<p>These seven women, according to the import of this sentence,
were put to death on the same day with the following nine, and
yet public histories mention nothing about them; which is a
matter of little surprise for the reason that the drowning of
those who were condemned to death on account of religion took
place at night, when they, with stones tied to their necks,
were cast down into the water from the Herring-packers' Tower
(then called the Holy Cross Tower), as appears from the
description of Amsterdam, by Dr. Dapper, Fol. 443.</p>

<p class="c3">Extract as above, Fol. 52. verso</p>

<p>Whereas Leentgen, Jan van Rheenen's wife, Adriana Jans, a
maiden from Benskop, Goechgen Jans, of Lubik, born at Goude,
Leentgen Hendrix, a maiden of Hertogenbosch, Griet Pieters
Mollen, a maiden, Marritge, Nadminx, a maiden of Alkmaar,
Aeltje Gillis, a 'maiden from Benskop, Jannetje Jans, a maiden
of Utrecht, Aeltjen Wouters, born at Asperen, have been
rebaptized, and betaken themselves to the sect and heresy of
the Anabaptists, holding pernicious views concerning the
sacraments of the holy church, contrary to the holy Christian
faith and the ordinances of said church; and to the written
laws and decrees of his imperial majesty our gracious lord,
without being willing to repent of it; therefore, my lords the
judges, having heard the demand made by the bailiff against
them in behalf of his imperial majesty, together with their
answer and confession, and having considered the circumstances
of this case, have condemned the aforesaid persons by</p>

</div><div id="766"> 

<p>sentence, to be executed with water and put to death by the
executioner, as was done by the executioner; and furthermore
declare their property confiscated for the benefit of the
emperor as count of Holland, of those who are not citizens of
this city, and of the citizens, to the sum of one hundred
pounds, according to the privileges of this city. Done on the
15th of May, A. D. 1535, in the presence of the bailiff,
Goossen Janssen Rekalff, Burgomaster, and all the judges.</p>

<p>The public writers of those times also make mention of these
women, but without stating anything more than their number, and
that they were drowned. This sentence, however, not only makes
known their names, but from it also their innocence is
evident.</p>

<p><i>Extract as above, Fol.</i> 59. <i>verso</i></p>

<p>Whereas Pietersen, <i>alias</i> Borrekiek, born at Leyden,
has entered the covenant of the Anabaptists, and been
rebaptized, holding pernicious views concerning the sacraments
of the holy church contrary to the holy Christian faith and the
ordinances of said church, and the written laws and decrees of
his imperial majesty, our gracious lord, and, moreover, had
previous knowledge of a meeting held a certain time ago, at
Leyden, by adherents of the afore-mentioned sect, without
giving information thereof to the authorities of said city;
therefore, my lords the judges, having heard the demand of my
lord the bailiff, and having considered the circumstances of
his misconduct, have condemned said delinquent by sentence, to
be executed with the sword, and put to death on the scaffold,
by the executioner, his head to be put upon a stake, and his
body to be quartered and hanged to a wheel, for an example to
others; as was done by the executioner; and, furthermore,
declare his property confiscated for the benefit of the emperor
as Count of Holland. Done, etc., in presence as above in the
preceding sentence.</p>

<p class="c3">Extract as above, Fol. 70. verso</p>

<p>Whereas Hendrick van Maestricht, at the time when the boat,
loaded with Anabaptists, was about to sail to Geelmuyden, has
joined the sect of the Anabaptists, by the imposition of the
hand, performed on him by one Claes Enkhuysen, and has since
allied himself and kept fellowship with said people, conversed
with them at different places, and advised and induced several
others to join the aforesaid sect, contrary to the decrees
ordained and caused to be published by his imperial majesty our
gracious lord against the aforesaid sect and its adherents,
without that the aforesaid Hendrik has, improved the time of
grace, but rejected it; therefore, my lords the judges, having
heard the demand made by the bailiff in behalf of his imperial
majesty, against the aforesaid Hendrik, together with his
answer and confession, and having maturely considered the
circumstances of this case, have condemned the aforesaid
Hendrik van Maes richt by sentence, to be executed with the
sword and put to death by the executioner, and his body to be
placed upon a wheel, and his head upon a stake, unless it be
that the lords, out of grace, be pleased to grant him the
church yard; which sentence was afterwards executed by the
executioner. Done on the 10th of June, A. D. 1536, in the
presence of the bailiff, all the burgomasters excepted,
Cornelis Buyk, Syverts, Claes Gerritsse, Mattheus Claes Doeden,
Jan Ryser Janssen, Pieter Willemsse Kantert, and Symon
Marttensse Dircx, judges.</p>

<p class="c3">Extract as above, Fol. 77. verso</p>

<p>Whereas Albert Reyers, <i>alias</i> Oldeknecht, born at
Bolswaert, in Friesland, has for several years resorted to the
society, intercourse and fellowship of persons tainted with
heresy and evil doctrines, and has been found with them in
divers conventicles, and has also held such in his own
dwelling, where the writings and sacraments of the holy church,
and the articles of the holy Christian faith were subjected to
improper disputation, teaching and treatment, so that the
afore-mentioned Albert, having become infected thereby, spoke
and believed evilly of the holy sacrament of the altar and
other sacraments; also of the ordinances and customs of the
holy church, to the scandal of good Christians, contrary to the
holy Christian faith, and the decrees and edicts of his
imperial majesty our gracious lord; therefore, the judges,
having heard the demand made by my lord the bailiff against the
afore-mentioned Albert Reyers, together with his answer and
confession, and having duly considered the circumstances of
this case, have condemned said Albert, according to the
aforesaid decrees, by sentence, to be executed with the sword
and put to death by the executioner, and his body afterwards to
be placed on a wheel, and his head upon a stake; and,
furthermore, declare his property confiscated to the sum of one
hundred pounds, according to the privileges of this city. So
done on the 12th day of April, in the year 1537, in presence of
the bailiff, Claes Gerritsse Deymans and Gerrit Meeuwess,
Burgomasters, and Gerrit Meeuwess and all the judges.</p>

<p><i>Extract as above, Fol.</i> 77. <i>verso</i></p>

<p>Whereas Ahdries Harmans of Gelre, has undertaken at
different times and place to dispute concerning the Scriptures,
and to hold conventicles, where the Scriptures, and the
sacraments and ordinances of the holy church were subjected to
improper teaching and treatment, whereby the aforesaid Andries,
having fallen into error and heresy, also taught these views to
others, and tainted them therewith, and has also for a certain
time spoken and believed evilly and heretically, and does still
believe so, concerning the holy sacrament of the altar, and
other sacraments of the holy church, contrary to the holy
Christian faith, and against the decrees of his imperial
majesty our gracious lord;</p>

</div><div id="767"> 

<p>therefore, the judges, having heard the demand made by my
lord the bailiff against the aforesaid Andries, together with
his answer and confession, and having maturely considered the
circumstances of his misdemeanors, condemn said Andries,
according to the afore-mentioned decrees, to be executed with
the sword and put to death by the executioner, and afterwards
his body to be placed upon a wheel, and his head upon a stake,
for an example to others; and furthermore, declare his property
confiscated for the benefit of the lord, to the sum of one
hundred pounds, according to the privileges of this city. So
done on the 12th of April 1537, in presence of the bailiff,
Claes Gerrit Deymans and Gerrit Andries, burgomasters, and all
the judges.</p>

<p>This execution was performed by the executioner immediately
after the sentence was pronounced.</p>

<p><i>Extract as above, Fol.</i> 78. <i>verso</i></p>

<p>Whereas Thymon Hendricx of Campen, three years ago or
thereabouts, was rebaptized, and entered into the covenant and
heresy of the Anabaptists, holding pernicious views concerning
the holy Christian faith, and the sacraments and ordinances of
the holy church contrary to the truth of the holy faith and
against the decrees published in regard to this, by his
imperial majesty our gracious lord, therefore, the judges
having heard the demand made by the bailiff of this city, in
behalf of his imperial majesty against the afore-mentioned
Thymon Hendricx, together with his answer and confession, and
having duly considered the circumstances of the aforesaid case,
condemn said Thymon, according to the afore-mentioned decrees,
by sentence, to be executed with the sword and put to death by
the executioner, and his body afterwards to be put upon a
wheel, and his head upon a stake, for an example to others;
and, furthermore, declare his property confiscated for the
benefit of the lord. So done on the 12th of April 1537, in the
presence of the bailiff, Claes Gerrit Deymans and Gerritt
Andries, burgomasters, and all the judges.</p>

<p>This execution was performed by the executioner immediately
after the sentence was pronounced.</p>

<p><i>Extract as above, Fol.</i> 93</p>

<p>Whereas Jan Janssen van dem Berg in the country of Cleves, a
year ago or thereabouts, was rebaptized in the city of Delft,
by one Claes with the lame hand and has entered into the
covenant and heresy of the Anabaptists, holding pernicious
views concerning the holy Christian faith, and the sacraments
and ordinances of the holy church, contrary to the truth of the
holy faith, and against the decrees emitted in regard to this
by his imperial majesty our gracious lord; therefore, the
judges, having heard the demand made by the bailiff of this
city in behalf of his imperial majesty, against the
aforementioned Janssen, together with his answer and
confession, and having duly considered the circumstances of the
aforesaid case, condemn said Jan Janssen, according to the
aforesaid decrees, by sentence, to be executed and put to death
by the executioner, and his body then to be put upon a wheel,
and his head upon a stake, for an example to others; and
furthermore, declare his property confiscated for the benefit
of the lord. Done on the 7th of July, A. D. 1539, in the
presence of all the burgomasters, Joost Buyk Sybrant, Jan
Willemss, Albert Dirksen, Willem Stitchel, and Floris
Floriss.</p><br />

<h1>ELEVEN BRETHREN AND A SISTER, AT ANTWERP; HARMAN TIMMERMAN, JAN VAN HASEBROECK, PIETER VERLONGE, GERRIT VAN MANDEL, JAN VAN MANDEL, JAN DE SCHAPER, JAN WIL JOOT, JAN VAN DOORNICK, WILLEM VAN POPERINGE, MAEYKEN HIS WIPE, JAN KOOPMAN, HANS HIS SERVANT; A. D. 1569</h1> 

<p>In the year 1569, at Antwerp, there was apprehended,
examined, tortured and finally sentenced to death, for living
according to the word of God. and the testimony of the truth,
twelve pious Christians, namely, Harman Timmerman, Jan van
Hasebroeck, Pieter Verlonge, Gerrit van Mandel, Jan van Mandel,
Jan de Schaper, Jan Wiljoot, Jan van Doornick, Willem van
Poperinge, Maeyken, his wife, Jan Koopman, and Hans his
servant. One of them, however, died in prison, from the effects
of the torture. Seven were burned alive before Easter, their
mouths having been screwed together with screws; and the last
mentioned four, in like manner, on the 20th of May of said
year.</p>

<p>Here follows a brief yet thorough and Christian confession
of faith, of the one Being, God the Father, Son and Holy Ghost,
and of the eternal Godhead of Christ the Son of God; also of
the incarnation, visibleness, suffering and death of the
eternal and only begotten Son of the living God, our Lord and
Saviour Jesus Christ; which, by this here mentioned hero and
witness of Jesus, Herman Timmerman, was written as an answer
and refutation to a letter that had been sent him; and to which
he so effectually testified and confirmed with, his blood and
death. We have added the same here, for the benefit of the
reader. We ask you to read it with Christian regard and
attention; we hope that you will be instructed and bettered by
it. It reads as follows</p>

<p>In the first place, my friend, you desire us to write to
you, whether we confess that the Father and the man ~esus
Christ and the Holy Ghost are one Being. ur answer is, that we
confess, that there is one Father, and one Son, and one Holy
Ghost, and that with these words, namely, Father, Son and Holy
Ghost, the only and Almighty God was expressed by Christ
Himself, Matt. 28:19. This then is our belief, namely, that we
confess, that when the Father was, there was also the Son; for
the Father never was without the Son. For as the Scriptures
testify of the Father, that He is</p>

</div><div id="768"> 

<p>eternal, and that all things are through Him; so they also
testify of the Son, that His goings forth are from the
beginning, from the days of eternity; and all things were
created by Him. Mic. 5:1; Col. 1:16; Jno. 1:3; Eph. 3:9; Heb.
1:2. Likewise, also through the Holy Spirit; for all things
were made by Him, who has one will and work with the Father and
the Son, as may well be understood from these words where the
Scriptures testify that the Holy Ghost says, "Separate me
Barnabas and Saul for the work whereunto I have called them."
II Esd: 16:62; Psalm 33:6; Acts 13:2. See, my friends, here the
Holy Ghost says that He calls them to this work; now Paul says,
that Jesus Christ has called and sent him. Acts 26:16. And in
the epistle to the Galatians we read, that God called him, and
separated him from his mother's womb, to reveal His Son by him.
Galatians 1:15, 16. From these words the unity can clearly be
understood. And there are still other passages which testify
concerning the Holy Ghost, that He appoints the ministers or
bishops in the church of God, which He has purchased with His
own blood, and that He also dispenses the gifts. Acts 20:28; I
Cor. 12:11.</p>

<p>From these words it is easy to understand the unity and
operation of the Holy Ghost, which He has with the Father and
the Son, so that He Cannot be excluded from the unity: Nor can
the Son; for He says, "I and the Father are one," John 10:30;
which unity and Son of God He is according to the person as
well as according to the Spirit; for He is frequently,
according to His humanity called the Son of God, as you may
read where the centurion said, "Truly this is the Son of God."
Matt. 27:54. And Paul says, that we are reconciled to God by
the death of His Son. Rom. 5:10. Again, that God did not spare
His Son, 8:32. And John says, that the blood of Jesus Christ
His Son cleanses us from all sin. I John 1:7; 4:10. And Luke
says, "That which shall be born of thee shall be called the Son
of God." Luke 1:35. And to the Galatians, "That God sent forth
his Son, who was born of a woman, " Gal. 4:4. Now He who is the
Son of God; and whom He has given for our propitiation (I Jno.
4:10), was certainly born of Mary in the form of a human
person. And Isaiah says, "Unto us a child is born, unto us a Son
is given: and his name shall be called Wonderful, Counsellor,
The mighty God, The everlasting Father" (Isa. 9:6), and other
things, which God says of Himself, and which John the Baptist
and Christ declare concerning Himself. Read Isaiah where it is
written, "Behold, your God. For, behold, the Lord Sabaoth
cometh; he shall feed his flock like a shepherd." Isa.
40:9.</p>

<p>Also in Ezekiel God says, "I will myself attend to my sheep."
Ezek. 34:11. Now Christ says, that He is the Shepherd of the
sheep, and that the sheep are His own. Zechariah says, "Smite
the Shepherd, and the sheep shall be scattered," and in John we
read, that Christ is the Bridegroom, who has the bride; and in
the epistle to the Ephesians [we are taught], that He gave
Himself for her, that He might prepare Himself a glorious
church. Eph. 5:25. Christ also is the Lamb of God, and in
Revelation we read that the marriage of the Lamb is come, and
that His wife has made herself ready. Rev. 19:7. Hence we can
clearly understand from these words, that Jesus Christ is the
Bridegroom and husband of His church, which husband by the
prophet Isaiah is called God, "For thy Maker is thine husband,"
he says, "the Lord of hosts is his name: and thy Redeemer is the
Holy One of Israel; the God of the whole earth shall he be
called." Isa. 54:5.</p>

<p>See, my friends, from all these words it can clearly be
understood, that Christ cannot be excluded from the unity or
from God; since God in the Scriptures is frequently expressed
by the word Christ, as you may read in Timothy, where Paul
calls Christ our Saviour, and also calls God our Saviour, and
in other places, where God is called our Saviour. Read I Tim.
l:l. And God says through Isaiah, "I am the Lord; and beside me
there is no Saviour." Isa. 43:11; 45:5. Now the Scriptures
testify, that man's salvation lies in the sacrifice of the body
of our dear Lord Jesus Christ, as we above quoted to you some
passages; as, that we are reconciled to God by the death of His
Son</p>

<p>the body died, and, as Peter says, "By- his stripes we were
healed." His body suffered the stripes. I Pet. 2:24. And
Isaiah, "With his stripes we are healed, " the stripes were
inflicted upon the body. Isa. 53:5.</p>

<p>See, my friend, it is therefore clear from these words, that
Christ cannot be excluded from God with body and spirit, since
God ascribes to Himself that which Christ has done, as we
explained above concerning the Shepherd of the sheep. And
Christ ascribes to Himself that which God does, as may
frequently be understood from the Scriptures; so that the
inference is clear, that they have one will and work: for what
things soever the Father doeth, these also doeth the Son
likewise. And as the Father raiseth up the dead, and quickeneth
them; even so the Son quickeneth whom He will. John 5:19, 21.
Hence the works of the Son of God can be ascribed to none other
than to God, so that the Son cannot be excluded from God. When
therefore the word God is named, Father, Son and Holy Ghost are
thereby expressed. Thus confess we the only God.</p>

<p>You further desire an answer in regard to the passages which
speak of the one God, whether thereby any other than the Father
is named. I understand your question thus, "Whether Christ, who
died, is also comprised in the expression one God?" Rom..l:8;
5:8; John 5:18; I John 5:9.</p>

<p><i>Answer.</i> In the first place you quote Deut. 6:4, where
Moses said, "Hear, O Israel, the Lord our God is one God;" and
says still further in the same</p>

</div><div id="769"> 

<p>chapter, "Ye shall not tempt the Lord your God, as ye tempted
him in Massah." v. 16; Matt. 4:7. See, my friend, they tempted
this one God, who by Paul is called Christ, where he says, "And
let us not tempt Christ, as some tempted him." I Corinthians
10:9, Now I understand from your letter, that you would exclude
Christ from God; I understand it by the passage you quote (John
17), by which you would prove that Christ is not God. Our
answer concerning this passage is, "They that confess Jesus
Christ in truth also confess Him God, since God is expressed by
the word Christ, as we have proved above from the words of
Paul." You further quote the language of Hezekiah, where he
said, "O Lord God of Israel, thou art alone God; thou hast made
heaven and earth." II Kings 19:15. By these words you would
prove that Christ is excluded from the one God. And you write
in your letter that the one God of whom Hezekiah spoke made
heaven and earth; and you exclude Christ from the one God;
hence you must also exclude Him from the creation of heaven and
earth, and must first refute all these witnesses that testify
concerning Jesus Christ, that all that is made was made by Him.
Read John 1:3; Col. 1:9; Eph. 3:9; Heb. 1:2; Ps. 33:6. When you
shall have refuted all these witnesses, and excluded Christ
from all the works of God, then I shall admit your view, that
Christ is not comprised in the expression, one God.</p>

<p>You further say that God is invisible and lives forever, but
that Christ was seen, and that He died, and that the child was
without knowledge, and that it grew up in wisdom; concerning
which you shall hear our views afterwards from the confession
of our faith, which we prove from the Scriptures, which later
we must believe. Furthermore, you say that God knows the times,
and that the Son does not know them. Matt. 24:36; Mark 13:32.
Our answer is, that Christ speaks this according to His
humiliation; for there are other passages which testify
concerning Him, that He knows all things; as where Peter
said, "Lord, thou knowest all things;" and Christ did not
contradict him, saying, "'No, Peter, I do not know the last
day." He did not even reply to it. Again, when the disciples
said to Him, "Now are we sure that thou knowest all things."
John .16:30. You further say that God knows the hearts of all
the children of men. Ps. 7:9; Jeremiah 11:20; 17:10; 12:3. We
say that Christ also knows them; for He knew what was in man,
and needed not that any should testify of man. II Tim. 4:8;
Revelation 2:23; John 2: 25. And Christ said, "I know you, that
ye have not the love of God in you." John 9:42. And in John
6:61, we read that Jesus knew in Himself that</p>

<p>is disciples murmured at it. But that you write concerning
the revelation of John, that God gave Him the same, this does
not imply that He [Christ] does not know anything. You further
say that God is Almighty, and does all things without the
assistance of any one. <i>Answer:</i> Above we have proved that
Christ Jesus and the Holy Ghost are comprehended in the word
God, or you must prove that the Father does some things without
the Son or the Holy Ghost, contrary to the words of Christ
where He says, "What things soever the Father doeth, these also
doeth the Son likewise." And, "My Father worketh hitherto, and I
work." And"As the Father raiseth up the dead, and quickeneth
them, even so the Son quickeneth whom he will." John 5:19;
17:21. And if we are to honor the Son as we honor the Father,
as the Father requires, we must certainly confess Him God, for
the Father is honored as God, and if we now deny the Son, we
have neither the Father, nor the Son, and we are also the
spirit of antichrist. I John 2:22. And as God did the miracles
by Him, so He, again, did them by the Father. And He said to
two blind men, "Believe ye that I am able to do this to you?"
And they believed it and were helped. Matthew 9:28. This I
state, that you may know that He frequently ascribes to Himself
the works which He does, and sometimes to His Father; in order
that you may know that they are one God, who worketh all
things. You say that God requires the Holy Spirit, which is
true. Now you must observe that a certain thing is sometimes
ascribed to God the Father, and sometimes to the Son; for we
read, John 3:16, that God so loved the world, that he gave his
only Son. Rom. 5:8; I John 4:9. And John 10:17, we read that
Christ says, that He lays down His life; no man takes it from
Him; but He lays it down of Himself. Again, that He gives His
flesh for the life of the world. John 6:51. And that He also
imparts the Holy Ghost, and also sent Him to His disciples.
John 20:22; 16:7, 13; 15:26; Luke 24:49.</p>

<p>You further quote I Cor. 15:28. Our answer is, as above:
That sometimes a work is ascribed to the Father and sometimes
to the Son; that all men might know that they are one. For we
read that God the Father set Jesus Christ at His own right hand
in the heavenly places. Eph. 1:20. And we also read, that the
Lord sat down on the right hand of the Majesty on high. Heb.
1:3. Therefore my friend, you may well take heed before you
proceed in such a weighty matter, and first well prove with the
word of Christ and His apostles, that you do not run away with
a word, without first proving whether it agrees with all the
words of God. Farewell, and read with the understanding.</p>

<p>Our belief and ground concerning the incarnation of Jesus
Christ is, that we confess and believe, that the only begotten
Son of God, who was with the Father before the foundation of
the world (John 17:24), and was in the form of God (Phil. 2:6),
was foreordained before the foundation of the world; whose
goings forth are from the beginning; by whom the world was
made, John 1:3; Col. 1:16; Heb. 1:2; and who, though He was</p>

</div><div id="770"> 

<p>rich, became poor for our sakes, and came forth from the
Father, came into the world; came down from heaven; and through
the power of the Most High was conceived in Mary, and became
man in her. For the Word became flesh (John 1:14), so that it
was seen with the eyes, and handled with the hands; of the word
of life. I John 1:1. Born of Mary (Luke 2:7); given unto us as
a son (Isa. 9:6), and crucified, died, and buried for us;
raised from the dead, for God raised up His child Jesus (Acts
3:15; 10:40; I Thess. 1:10); and He ascended up where He was
before (John 6:62), for He that descended is the same also that
ascended, Eph. 4:10. We also believe, that the Son of God, when
the time was fulfilled, became Abraham's son, David's son,
Abraham's seed, the Son of man; and the son and fruit of Mary,
when He became man; not that the Son of God took His origin or
beginning from Abraham, or David, or Mary; for we have above
shown by the Scriptures, that He was with the Father before the
foundation of the world; and was before Abraham was. John 8:58.
We therefore believe, that Jesus Christ, without any division,
visible or invisible, mortal or immortal, wholly and entirely,
is the first begotten, own, true, Son of God, as all believers
have confessed Him, as we can read in the holy Scriptures.
Peter confessed Him as the Son of the living God. Likewise also
John the Baptist confessed Him; for he said: I saw, and bare
record that this is the Son of God. John 1:34. Nathanael
said, "Rabbi, thou art the Son of God." Martha in like manner
confessed that He was the Christ, the Son of the living God,
who had come into the world. John 1.1:27.</p>

<p>This is our confession concerning the incarnation of our
Lord Jesus Christ. Now if some one should ask us whether we do
not believe that the Son of God assumed flesh and blood, in
which He dwelt; and that the Son of God remained the same as He
was, invisible, immortal, unchangeable, as is the Father; we
answer thus."If it were true that the Son of God remained
invisible, immortal and unchangeable, as the Father, and
assumed flesh and blood from Mary, in which He dwelt, it could
not be said with truth, that the Son of God became man, but
according to truth it would have to be said, that the Son of
God assumed a man, in whom He dwelt; for to assume is to
assume, and to become is to become, and assuming cannot be
called becoming. There further follows from it, that if the Son
of God remained invisible, as the Father, He could not be
crucified, and in this case He that hung on the cross, is not
the Son of God; for He was seen, and God has but one Son. It
further follows from it, that if the Son remained invisible,
God did spare His Son, contrary to the words of Paul, where he
says, that God spared not His Son, but delivered Him up for us
all. Rom.~8:32. And God would in this case also not have given
us His Son, contrary to the teaching of John, where he
says, "God so loved the world, that he gave his only Son." John
3:16.</p>

<p>Furthermore, if He remained immortal, it can not be said,
that we are reconciled to God by the death of His Son, contrary
to Paul, where he says, that we are reconciled to God by the
death of His Son. Rom. 5:10. Nor can it be said that the blood
of Jesus Christ His Son cleanses us from all sin. It can only
be said that the flesh and blood of Mary cleanses us from all
sin, contrary to the teaching of John, where he says, that the
blood of Jesus Christ his Son cleanseth us from all sin. Nor
can it be said, that God raised up His child Jesus; for if He
did not die, He did not raise Him up, contrary to the teaching
of Paul, I Thessalonians 1:10; Acts 2:24; 10:40. Now if someone
should ask us, whether we believe, that the Son of God was
changed; we answer, that we believe, that the Son of God for
our sakes was changed so much that He became what He was not,
namely, He, who before was rich, for our sakes became poor. And
He, who was in the form of God, became man; for the Word became
flesh, so that it was seen with the eyes and handled with the
hands. And He, who before was invisible, became visible; and
arose from the dead; and ascended up where He was before. For
He that descended is the same also that ascended; and He sits
on the right hand of the Majesty on high, and is our Advocate,
our Mediator, and ever lives to reconcile us. See, my friend,
thus confess we the love which God has shown toward us. So that
Jesus Christ humbled Himself for our sakes, became lower than
the angels, and was found in fashion as a man. Phil. 2:8; Heb.
2:7. Behold, my friend, this is the answer to the remark that
the child grew up in wisdom. For when He became like unto man,
as Paul teaches, He became in all things like unto His
brethren. Heb. 2:17. Now, another man grows up in wisdom;
therefore the Son of God humbled Himself, put Himself in our
stead before God His Father, and took upon Him our sins, and
paid for them in our stead, so that in our place He cried to
God with strong crying and tears, and offered up [prayers and
supplications] unto Him that was able to save Him from death.
Heb. 5:7; Matt. 27:46. Not, my friend, that He needed to be
saved on the part of His own person. Now if someone should ask
us, whether by such an incarnation as you have confessed here
He did not lose His Sonship, and unity with God, we answer: We
have proved above by the Scriptures, that Jesus Christ was the
Son of God before every creature (Col. 1:15) , and was with the
Father before the foundation of the world; whose goings forth
are from the beginning and from eternity. And He did not lose
His Sonship by His incarnation; for, while He was man, the
Father confessed Him as His Son. Matt. 3:17; 17:5; Mark 1:11;
9:7; Luke 3:22. And Christ said, that He was the Son of God.
John 10:36. Likewise did Peter. Matt. 16:16. John the Baptist,
Nathanael, Mar-</p>

</div><div id="771"> 

<p>tha, and Thomas confessed Him as their Lord and God. And
Christ said, "I and the Father are one." From these words it is
easy to understand, that by His incarnation He did not lose His
first identity and unity; for the Son of God could become man,
so that He died; but nevertheless remain God and the Son of
God. For we read concerning the first man Adam, who was a
figure of Christ, that God made him of the earth, so that Adam
became a living soul, flesh and blood, capable of suffering and
dying, and yet remained earth; for God said, "Dust thou art, and
unto dust shalt thou return." Rom. 5:14; Gen. 1:19; Sir. 17:1.
Abraham also confessed, that he was dust (earth). Gen. 18:27.
Now, when the word earth is named, everything is comprised in
it, that is earth and takes its origip from the earth. Now Adam
and Abraham, who were earth died, and all men who are of the
earth, will be able to die; but the earth on which we walk can
not die. Nevertheless, both are earth, and both are
comprehended in the term earth. Now, when the word God is
named, everything is comprised in it, that is God, and all that
has its origin from and with God; namely, with the word God, we
express Father, Son, and Holy Ghost. Now the Scriptures
testify, as we have abundantly stated above, that the Son of
God became man, so that He was seen, and that He died; but the
Father and the Holy Ghost did not die. Nevertheless, God
reconciled the world, and purchased His church by His blood;
for God was made manifest in the flesh. Read Baruch 4:22. For
God is man's Saviour. Read Isaiah 43:11; I Tim. 1:15; Tit. 1:4.
Now if Christ's body were of the earth, in which body our
propitiation lies, as Peter teaches, that we were healed by His
stripes, and Isaiah, that we are healed by His stripes; and
Paul, that we are reconciled by His death; then the earth must
be our savior, and not God; and John must have spoken falsely,
when he said, that the Word, which is called God, became flesh.
And before we will believe that Christ's body is of Mary's
blood, we want to see this assertion pointed out to us in the
Scriptures, word for word, and we will say nothing against it;
for we must believe as the Scriptures teach us. John 7:38. And
if any one wishes to accept our faith, we will show him word
for word where this is written, namely, that the Word became
flesh. Farewell. Read with the understanding. HARMAN
TIMMERMAN.</p>

<h1>JAN VAN HASEBROECK</h1>

<p>From Jan van Hasebroeck three letters have fallen into our
hands, which we have likewise added here for the benefit of the
reader.</p>

<h2>THE FIRST LETTER OF JAN VAN HASEBROECK TO HIS WIFE</h2> 

<p>The abundant grace, peace and mercy from God the heavenly
Father, and the love of our dear Lord Jesus Christ, shows us by
the shedding of His holy and precious blood on the tree of the
cross; may He strengthen and stablish you in the inner man,
with His Word and the power of His Holy Spirit; the same give
you much wisdom and understanding, that you may be able to
stand, to the praise of the Lord, and the salvation of your
soul; this I wish you, my dear and much beloved wife and sister
in Christ Jesus, and all that fear the Lord from the heart, as
a cordial greeting. Amen.</p>

<p>After all affectionate greetings, I inform you, my dear and
much beloved wife, that I am still reasonably well, inwardly
and outwardly-the Lord be praised forever for His great grace
and mercy-as I trust by the grace of the Lord that it is also
with you, in the inner man and in the outward, as it pleases
the Lord. For, my most beloved, if it pleased the Lord, He
would soon have ordered it otherwise; hence be content with
what the Lord has ordered in regard to you; for He knows what
tends to your salvation, O my most beloved love, be pleased to
know, that you were a medicine to my heart the last time I saw
you at the lattice; for, as a hart panteth after the water
brooks, so did my heart long to see your face again. Ps. 42:1.
O my dear wife, that I might see and speak to you once more,
and bid you adieu. But, my dearest, the Lord has not commanded
me to take leave from my friends, but to follow Him in the
obedience of the truth. Luke 9:61. O my most beloved wife, whom
I have wedded before Christ and His church, for a helpmeet in
my pilgrimage, over which helpmeet the Lord has placed me as
head and protector, to feed and nourish you as my own body.
Eph. 5:28. Now, my most beloved, if I have not well attended to
my calling, during the time that we have been together; if I
have grieved you in anything, I kindly ask you from the bottom
of my heart, to forgive me; I have asked the Lord with tears,
to forgive me. O my dear wife, I forgive you from the heart
everything you may have done amiss to me. O my dear wife, you
have done nothing amiss to me; but I have grieved myself; hence
I have prayed the Lord, to forgive me the same. And do you
also, my dear wife, pray the Lord in my behalf, that I may be
an acceptable offering to Him; for I trust by His grace to go
before you, with our fellow brethren, and to await you under
the altar. O my most beloved, my heart's prayer for you is,
that you would always walk worthily before God and His church
(Phil. 1:27), as you have also hitherto done; so that at the
last day we may stand and hear His voice, "Come, ye blessed of
my Father, inherit the kingdom prepared for you from the
foundation of the world."</p>

<p>Christ also says, "Fear not, little flock; for it is my
Father's good pleasure to give you his kingdom." Luke 12:32. He
also says, "Fear not, for the very hairs of your head are all
numbered." Verse 7. My most beloved, comfort yourself with the
Word of the Lord, and with the beautiful promises of God; that
you may not faint in the way of the Lord, because of the great
persecution and torments which are inflicted on His people for
His name's sake; for He says Himself, "Be not</p>

</div><div id="772"> 

<p>afraid of them that kill the body, and after that have no
more that they can do; but fear him, which after he hath
killed, hath power also to cast the soul into hell." Luke 12:4,
5. And as the prophet Isaiah has said, "Fear not men, or the
children of men, that perish like grass." Isaiah 51:12.
Therefore, my most beloved, be not afraid of this pain; for
Paul says that the sufferings of this present time are not
worthy to be compared with the glory which shall be revealed in
us. Rom. 8:18. In another place Paul also says, "Though our
outward man perish, yet the inward man is renewed day by day.
For our light affliction, which is but for a moment, worketh
for us a far more exceeding and eternal weight of glory; while
we look not at the things which are seen, but at the things
which are not seen: for the things which are seen are temporal;
but the things which are not seen are eternal." II Cor.
4:16-18.</p>

<p>O my most beloved wife, my heart's prayer and desire is,
that you would always associate with them that fear the Lord,
as I likewise trust to do; that hereafter we may meet where men
shall not part us, but where we shall abide forever with the
Father and His Son. If we only remain steadfast, we shall be
saved. Matt. 10:22.</p>

<p>O my dear wife, as the prophet Malachi says, that the day
cometh, that shall burn as an oven, and all the proud, yea, and
all that do wickedly, shall be stubble: and the day that cometh
shall burn them up, that it shall leave them neither root nor
branch. But unto you (he says) that fear my name shall the Son
of righteousness arise with healing in his wings; and you shall
go in and out, and find pasture. Mal. 4:1, 2.</p>

<p>Behold, my dear wife, what a difference there is between
them that fear God, and those that fear Him not. For as the
apostle Paul says to the Thessalonians, in his second epistle,
in the first chapter, "When the Lord Jesus Christ shall be
revealed from heaven with his mighty angels, in flaming fire,
taking vengeance on them that know not God, and that obey not
the Gospel of our Lord Jesus Christ: who shall be punished with
everlasting destruction from the presence of the Lord, and from
the glory of his power, where the fire shall not be quenched,
and their worm shall not die; but the smoke of their torment
shall ascend forever and ever." Mark 9:44; Rev. 14:11.</p>

<p>Behold, this shall be their reward. Rom. 6:23. But they that
fear God, love Him, and keep His commandments, according to
their weakness; their reward shall be life and peace, as the
Scriptures sufficiently testify. And Paul, also, says that eye
hath not seen, nor ear heard, neither have entered into the
heart of man, the things which God hath prepared for them that
love him. I Cor. 2:9.</p>

<p>Herewith I will draw to a close with my discourse, and
commend you to the Almighty Lord, the God of Abraham, the God
of Isaac, and the God of Jacob, who has given you to me, and,
as said before, placed me as a head, to feed and nourish you as
my own flesh, which I have done according to my weakness,
during the time that I have been with you. And now that I am
taken from you, I commend you, my dearest wife and sister in
the Lord, to the God of peace, who has given you to me; humbly
praying Him, through Jesus Christ, His dear and much beloved
Son, that He would keep you, and my two little lambs, always in
His truth, unto the end. And also you, my dear wife, I pray you
in all sincerity, to do the best for my two little children, as
I trust you will do. Oh. that it pleased the Lord, I would so
gladly do my best for you yet. My most beloved, I have heard
that you sent me a letter; but I did not receive it; hence if
you want to send me word in regard to anything, speak to N.,
and ask her whether she knows of any one that would come to the
common prison, and ask for the brother-in-law, in the fullet's
house. For we trust that if you can prudently give it into his
hand there, we shall get it; hence act circumspectly in this
matter, and do not send it without speaking to the rest; that
it may go through at once and attract the less notice. For we
have been greatly distressed on account of a letter that came
in from without; in which stood that they had received two of
our letters. This letter fell into the hands of the jailer, who
seemed beside himself that we had written. Therefore, my
dearest love, when you want to write me something, write not
that you received a letter from me; but if you have received
this letter from me, and send me another, place under your
letter the sign that will stand under this, thereby I shall
know that you received my letter. And if you speak to my
brother, greet him much from me, and tell him to enter with
Noah into the ark, lest the flood come upon him, which is the
wrath of God; and to go with Lot out of Sodom, and not to look
back, like Lot's wife, who became an example to those who in
future times should commit ungodliness; for Christ says, "No
man, having put his hand to the plough, and looking back, is
fit for the kingdom of God." Luke 9: 62. Hereby greet him much
in my name, and greet all those who inquire after me,
especially him who was my master, and my country-man and his
wife, and the woman who the day before was at our house, and,
also, my most beloved, whom I know upon earth, yea, who is as
dear to me as my own life; for my natural life was not near so
dear to me; this the Lord knows, who is rich in mercy.</p>

<p>O my beloved, I commend you, and all them that fear God, to
the Lord, and to the Word of His grace. Amen.</p>

<p>Written by me, JAN VAN HASEBROECK,</p>

<p>Your husband and weak brother in Christ.</p>

<h2>THE SECOND LETTER OF JAN VAN HASEBROECK</h2> 

<p>Abundant grace and peace be with you from God the heavenly
Father, through Jesus Christ, His</p>

</div><div id="773"> 

<p>dear and much beloved Son, our Lord, through whom we expect
our salvation; may He by His Spirit confirm, strengthen, and
comtort you in all your tribulation and temptation, outward and
inward, that you may be able to stand firm and immovable in His
truth, to the end of your life, to His praise, and to the
salvation of your soul; this I wish you, my dear and much
beloved wife and sister in the Lord, as a friendly greeting and
adieu in Ghrist Jesus. Amen.</p>

<p>After all heartfelt greetings, my dear and much beloved
wife, be pleased to know, that I am still reasonably well
according to the flesh, the Lord be praised forever for His
grace; and my mind is always ready yet to go on in what I
declared and confessed before the rulers of the darkness of
this world; and I trust by the grace of the Lord to seal the
same with my blood and death, so that I unworthy one may obtain
the promise, where He says, "Whosoever shall lose his life for
my sake and the gospel's the same shall save it; and whosoever
shall confess me before men, him will I confess also before my
Father which is in heaven." Mark 8:35; Matthew 10:32.-
Therefore, my most beloved love, be of good cheer, and always
comfort yourself, and be comforted with the words of the Lord;
and do not grieve too much on account of the work and will of
the Lord, for He worketh all things after the counsel of His
own will (Eph. 1:11), and no one has ever been the Lord's
counselor. Hence, my dear and much beloved wife and sister in
the Lord, though we have had little joy with each other during
the time that the Lord has joined us together, and must now
part with sorrow, we know that the Lord has promised us nothing
here but tribulation and sorrow, as Christ said to His
disciples, "Ye shall weep and lament, but the world shall
rejoice; and ye shall be sorrowful, but your sorrow shall be
turned into joy." John 16:20. Christ also says, "In the world ye
shall have tribulation: but be of good cheer; I have overcome
the world" v. 33. He further says, "Blessed are they that weep
now: for they shall laugh; but woe unto them that laugh now:
for they shall weep." Luke 6:21, 25. Again, in another place he
says, "Blessed are they that mourn: for they shall be
comforted."</p>

<p>Thus, my dear and much beloved wife and sister in the Lord,
comfort yourself with these beautiful words and promises of
Christ, which partly also belong to you; for in that you are
sorry, you are sorry after a godly manner. And Paul says, that
godly sorrow worketh repentance to salvation not to be repented
of: but the sorrow of this world worketh death. II Cor. 7:9,
10.</p>

<p>O my dear wife, Paul, in another place, further says, that
our light affliction, which is but for a moment, worketh for us
a far more exceeding and eternal weight of glory; while we look
not at the things which are seen, but at the things which are
not seen: for the things which are seen are temporal; but the
things which are not seen are eter nal. II Cor. 4:17, 18. And
the sufferings of this present time are not worthy to be
compared with the glory which shall be revealed in us. Rom.
8:18. For the apostle says, that eye hath not seen, nor ear
heard, neither have entered into the heart of man, the things
which God hath prepared for them that love Him. I Cor. 2:9.
Therefore, my dear and much beloved wife and sister in the
Lord, since we have such beautiful promises for this little and
temporal suffering, be of good cheer, and always patient in
your tribulation and temporal sufferings, continuing instant in
prayer, patient in hope (Rom. 12:12 ), and wait for the time of
your redemption with long suffering. I trust by the grace of
the Lord to be an example and pattern to you, and to leap by my
God over a wall (Ps. 18:29), to go to meet Christ, my
Bridegroom, as He has commanded me (Matthew 25:1); and also to
go and await you under the altar of the Lord, where all God's
elect shall rest, until the number of their fellow brethren
that must yet be killed for the testimony of Jesus, like we, is
fulfilled. Rev. 6:9, 11.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear and much beloved wife and sister in the
Lord, always wait with patience for the Lord your God, as did
the wise virgins, who had oil in their vessels, and were ready
to go in with their bridegroom, whereunto we all that believe
in Christ are called, to sup with Him. Rev. 3:20. For, as
Christ Himself says, Luke 12:37, "Blessed are those servants,
whom the Lord when he cometh shall find watching: verily I say
unto you, that he shall gird himself, and make them to sit down
to meat, and will come forth and serve them." Matthew
24:46.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear wife and sister in the Lord, always be of
good cheer, comfort yourself with the words of the Lord, and be
patient and resigned in that which the Lord has ordered
concerning you. Though He now comes to visit you with
tribulation, suffering or poverty, think that Christ, when He
was rich, for our sakes became poor, that through His poverty
He might make rich us who were poor. II Cor. 8:9. And James,
also, says, that God has chosen the poor of this world rich m
faith, and heirs of the kingdom which He hath promised to them
that love Him. James 2:5.</p>

<p>O my dear wife, think of old Tobit; when all his goods had
been taken from him, and he had to flee with his wife and his
son, he said, "And fear not, my son; true, we are poor, but we
shall have much wealth, if we fear the Lord, keep his
commandments, shun sin, and do good." Tobit 1:20; 4:21.</p>

<p>Hence, my much beloved wife and sister in the Lord, Christ
also says in the Gospel, "Be not afraid of them that kill the
body, and after that have no more that they can do. But I will
forewarn you whom ye shall fear: Fear him, which after he hath
killed hath power to cast body and soul into hell." Luke 12:4,
5. And in another place, "Fear not, little flock; for it is your
father's good pleasure to give you the kingdom." Verse 32. And
the</p>

</div><div id="774"> 

<p>prophet Isaiah also says, "Fear not men, nor the children of
men, who must perish like grass; for all flesh is as grass; and
all the goodliness thereof is as the flower of the field: the
grass withereth, the flower fadeth, but the word of the Lord
abideth forever." Isa. 51:12; 40:6, 8.</p>

<p>Further, my dear and greatly beloved wife and sister in the
Lord, be pleased to know, that it was a great joy for me to
hear that you were of such good cheer in your tribulation, and
that you have committed us four to the Lord; wherefore I
rejoice, and pray the Lord from the heart, that He would
strengthen and stablish you, and give you His divine Spirit for
a Comforter and Guide, since now is the time of which Christ
said (Matt. 24:24), that many false prophets and false Christs
should arise, yea, that even the very elect, if it were
possible, should be led into error.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear and much beloved wife, take good heed,
that no robber deceive you by philosophy and vain deceit, after
the rudiments of the world; and that you may not have labored
in vain, but may receive your reward, so that no man may take
your crown. Hence have your conversation always in heaven, from
whence we look for our Saviour, Christ Jesus our Lord; who
shall change our vile body, that it may be fashioned like unto
His glorious body. Phil. 3:20, 21. Herewith I will commend you,
my dear and much beloved wife, and both my children, to the
Lord, and bid you farewell, until we shall meet hereafter,
where men shall part us no more; for the apostle says, that the
Lord Himself shall descend from heaven with a shout, and with
the voice of the archangel; and the dead in Christ shall rise
first: then we which are alive and remain shall be caught up
together with them in the clouds, to meet the Lord in the air:
and so shall we ever be with the Lord (I Thess. 4:16, 17): then
men shall not part us. O my most beloved wife and sister in the
Lord, I herewith bid you adieu, and commend you to the Lord,
and to the Word of His grace; and may the peace of God, which
passeth all understanding, rule m your heart. Adieu, my dear
wife, and greet much them that inquire after me, especially my
brother, and bid him adieu, adieu. O adieu, my dear and much
beloved wife. Jan Koopman and Hansken greet you most heartily,
and also bid you adieu. Amen.</p>

<h2>THE THIRD LETTER OF JAN VAN HASEBROECK</h2> 

<p>The abundant grace, peace and mercy from God the heavenly
Father, through Jesus Christ His dear and much beloved Son our
Lord, be multiplied unto you, with the power and communion of
the Holy Ghost; may He strengthen, comfort and stablish you in
the inner man, so that you may be able to stand firm and
immovable in His truth to the end of your life, to His praise
and to the salvation of your soul; this I wish you my dear and
much beloved wife and sister in the Lord, as a cordial and
friendly greeting. Amen.</p>

<p>After all heartfelt greetings, my dear and much beloved
wife, be pleased to know that I am reasonably well yet
according to the flesh, the Lord be praised forever for His
grace; and my mind is still unchanged to go on in that which I
unworthy one declared and confessed in His name. I also hope to
seal the same with my blood, and I trust that the Lord will
help me in my last extremity; for Paul says (Heb. 2:18) in that
He Himself hath suffered [being tempted], He is able to succor
them that are tempted. O my dear and much beloved wife, be
pleased to know that I was partly rejoiced, and partly grieved,
when I heard how it is with you. For on account of your
sickness I was sorrowful; but when I heard again, that you were
of such good cheer in your tribulation and suffering, I greatly
rejoiced, and thanked the Lord for His great grace and
compassion. And I humbly beseech Him from the depth of my
heart, through Jesus Christ His dear Son, that He would
comfort, strengthen and stablish you, and always guide you into
His truth, to the end of your life. O my dear and much beloved
wife, always be of good cheer, and think that we must through
much tribulation and suffering enter into the kingdom of God,
like all the pious and God-fearing men that lived before our
time, as Paul tells us (Heb. 11), that they suffered mockings,
scourgings, and stoning, yea, bonds and imprisonment, and died
by the sword, yea, suffered distress and want: they went in
sheepskins and goatskins, wandering about in deserts; and had
to hide in caves of the earth. Therefore, my dear lamb, rejoice
with all the pious, of whom Paul says, that they took joyfully
the spoiling of their goods, and that all that will live godly
in Christ Jesus shall suffer persecution. II Tim. 3:12. For
Christ Himself says, "If they have persecuted me, they will also
persecute you; if they have kept my sayings, they will keep
yours also. Yea, if they have called the master of the House
Beelzebub, -how much more shall they call them of his
household?" John 15:20; Matthew 10:25.</p>

<p>O my dear and much beloved wife and sister in the Lord,
though the Lord come to visit us with tribulation and
suffering, Paul says, that it is given unto us, not only to
believe on His name. but also to suffer for it; and as the
sufferings of Christ abound in us, so our consolation also
aboundeth by Christ. Phil. 1:29; II Cor. 1:5. O my dear and
much beloved wife, receive willingly the chastening of the
Lord; for He chasteneth everyone whom He loveth, and scourgeth
every son whom He receiveth. Now no chastening for the present
seemeth to be joyous, but grievous: nevertheless, afterward it
yieldeth the peaceable fruit of righteousness unto them which
are exercised thereby. Heb. 12:6, 11.</p>

<p>O my dear and much beloved wife, herewith I will commend you
to the Lord, and kindly ask you from the depth of my heart.
that you would always do the best with my two little lambs, as
I also trust that you will do, as you sent me word.
Neverthe-</p>

</div><div id="775"> 

<p>less, I kindly ask you, that if the Lord should spare you
until they attain to their understanding, that you would
instruct them in the obedience of the truth; and always
associate with them that fear God, so that at the last day we
and they may stand together on the Lord's right hand, and hear
His voice, "Come, ye blessed of my Father, inherit the kingdom
prepared for you from the foundation of the world."</p>

<p>O my dear and much beloved wife and sister in the Lord I
Herewith I commend you to the Lord Almighty, and to the Word of
His grace, and bid you adieu, my dear wife, adieu, and the
peace of the Lord be with you and all them that fear Him. Jan
Koopman and Hansken greet you much; and Jan Koopman greets his
wife much; he and Hansken are also of good cheer. Amen.</p>

<p>Written by me JAN VAN HASEBROECK, your husband and weak
brother in the Lord.</p>

<h2>DIRK ANDRIESS, A. D. 1569</h2> 

<p>Dirk Andriess, a pious and God-fearing brother, was
apprehended at Zierickzee, A.D .1569; and as he, in all
temptations and sufferings, firmly adhered to the love of
Christ, he was finally sentenced to death as a heretic, and
thus, in order to follow Christ, who had died a bitter death
for him, he also gladly for the Lord's sake delivered up his
temporal life to death, to enter with Him into life eternal.
Matt. 25:46.</p><br />

<h1>JACOB DE ROORE, OR THE CHANDLER AND HERMAN VAN VLECKWIJCK, BOTH BURNED ALIVE AT THE STAKE, AT BRUGES, IN FLANDERS, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, THE 10TH OF JUNE, A. D. 1569</h1> 

<p>The very pleasant and favored country of Flanders, in and
about the year 1569, was as a dreadful den of murderers, in
which they did not hestitate to put to death the chosen friends
and followers of Jesus Christ, yea, to deprive them little by
little of life in the most awful and horrible manner, namely,
by fire, to the sorrow and grief of many, who living at that
time beheld it with weeping eyes. This appeared, among many
others, in two valiant heroes, and champions of Jesus Christ.
One of them was named Jacob de Roore, or the Chandler; he was a
teacher in the church, and a very God-fearing, intelligent,
kind, and eloquent man, who was not afraid at the peril of his
life to lead and feed, the flock of Jesus in the green meadows
of the true evangelical doctrine, though it was in forests and
wildernesses. The name of the other was Herman van Vleckwijck;
he was a common member, but possessed nevertheless no small
gifts.</p>

<p>These were both brought prisoners into Bruges, one of the
Flemish cities, where they had to endure many hard and severe
temptations from the papists, who sought to make them
apostatize from the faith; but as they were founded upon the im
movable corner stone, Christ Jesus, the edifice of their faith
also remained firm, and they could by no means be moved or
swerved therefrom. Hence the rulers at said place, through the
instigation of the Romish so called spirituality (clergy)
concluded their process, and delivered them both from life to
death, to be burned to ashes at the stake, which was done on
the 10th day of the month of June, A.D. 1569. Concerning this
the following verses have been composed, "In fifteen hundred and sixty-nine,</p>

<p>On the tenth of June, in the city of Bruges,</p>

<p>Encircled wholly by fiery flames,</p>

<p>With intrepid spirit, both Jacob and Herman.</p>

<p>Did testify before all the world</p>

<p>To the word of God, which they sealed with their heart's</p>

<p>blood,</p>

<p>And thus their sacrifice they did bring</p>

<p>To the mighty God that inhabiteth heaven."</p>

<p>Of these two offered up children of God, two disputations
are extant, which a certain monk, called Friar Cornelis held
with them at said place, and which, because of the wise,
intelligent and prudent answers of said two friends, are well
worthy to be added here.</p>

<h2>DISPUTATION BETWEEN JACOB DE KEERSGIETER AND MR. FRIAR CORNELIS, A FRANCISCAN MONK; IN THE PRESENCE OF MR. JAN VAN DAMME, RE CORDER, AND MR. MICHIEL HOUWAERT, CLERK OF THE CRIMINAL COURT, ON THE 9TH OF MAY, A. D. 1569*</h2> 

<p><i>Friar Cornelis.</i> Well, I've come here to see whether I
can convert you (Jacob, I believe, is your name) from your
false and evil belief, in which you are erring, and whether I
cannot bring you back to the Catholic faith of our mother, the
holy Roman church, from which you have apostatized to this
damnable Anabaptism. What do you say to this, eh?</p>

<p><i>Jacob.</i> With your permission, as regards that I have
an evil, false belief, this I deny; but that through the grace
of God I have apostatized from your Babylonian mother, the
Roman church, to the members, or the true church, of Christ
this I confess; and thank God for it, who has said, "Come out of
her, my people, that ye be not partakers of her sins, and that
ye receive not of her plagues." Rev. 18:4; Isa. 52:11.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i>Is it true? And do you call our mother the
holy Roman church, the whore of Babylon? And do you call your
hellish, devilish sect of Ana-</p>

<p class="c8">* The following two disputations, the first
between Jacob de Roore, or Jacob Keersgieter, and Friar
Cornelis, the second between Herman Vlekwijck and the same Fr.
Cornelis, were not given in Van Braght's first edition of 1660,
which we made the . standard in our translation, but was added
in the subsequent editions. Van Braght refers to these
disputations and says that he omitted them on account of the
indelicate and harsh language which frequently occurs in the
remarks of the impolite friar. We have omitted the worst of
these expressions and have indicated the omissions thus"
***</p>

<p>There are also a number of accounts of martyrs, not give in
the edition of 1660, but inserted in the subsequent editions,
which are also given in this translation.-Publishers</p>

</div><div id="776"> 

<p>baptists the members, or the true church of Christ? Eh I
hear this fine fellow once. ..Who the devil has taught you
this? your accursed Menno Simons, I suppose,</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i> With your permission, you talk very wickedly. It
was not necessary that Menno Simons should have taught us as
something new, that the Babylonian whore signifies your mother,
the Roman church, since John teaches us enough concerning this
in his Apocalypse, or Revelation, in the 14th, 16th, 17th, and
18th chapters.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i>Ah bah! what do you understand about St.
John's Apocalypse? at what university did you study? At the
loom, I suppose; for I understand that you were nothing but a
poor weaver and chandler, before you went around preaching and
rebaptizing out here in the Gruthuysbosch. I have attended the
university at Louvain, and studied divinity so long, and yet I
do not understand anything at all about St. John's Apocalypse;
this is a fact.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i> Therefore Christ thanked His heavenly Father,
that He had revealed and made it known to babes, and hid it
from the wise of this world, as is written, Matt. 11:25.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i>Exactly; God has revealed it to the weavers
at the loom, to the cobblers on their bench, and to
bellows-menders, lantern-tinkers, scissorsgrinders, broom
makers, thatchers, and all sorts of riff-raff, and poor,
filthy, and lousy beggars. And to us ecclesiastics who have
studied from our youth, night and day, He has concealed it.
Just see how we are tormented. You Anabaptists are certainly
fine fellows to understand the holy Scriptures; for before you
are rebaptized, you can't tell A from B, but as soon as you are
baptized, you can read and write. If the devil and his mother
have not a hand in this, I do not understand any thing about
you people.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i> I can well hear that you do not understand our
way of doing; for you ascribe to Satan the grace which God
grants our simple converts, when we with all diligence teach
them to read.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i>See here once; these heretics presume to
have the grace of God, and regard our mother, the holy Catholic
Roman church as the whore of Babylon-is this not a fine grace
of God? Ah, bah! you have the grace of the very devil of hell.
What shall I say in regard to this? If you regard our mother,
the holy Catholic Roman church as the</p>

</div><div id="777"> 

<p>whore of Babylon, I can well imagine what you consider our
holy father the pope, the vicar of God. Let us hear once.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i> I consider the pope the vicar of God; for he
occupies the place of God, as Paul writes concerning him, in
the second chapter of his second epistle to the
Thessalonians, "Let no man deceive you by any means: for that
day shall not come, except there come a falling away first, and
that man of sin be revealed, the son of perdition, who opposeth
and exalteth himself above all that is called God, or that is
worshiped; so that he as God sitteth in the temple of God,
shewing himself that he is God. Remember ye not, that, when I
was yet with you, I told you these things?"</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Hush, hush, you have preached enough; here
you are not in the Gruthuysbosch, nor do I sit down to hear you
preach. Bah I you accursed Anabaptist, would you apply the
prophecy of St. Paul to our holy father the pope? * *"Hear this
accursed heretic once; how he understands St. Paul. Bah I St.
Paul thereby means the antichrist; that he does.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  I too believe that Paul thereby means antichrist. But
does not the pope of Rome do the very works of antichrist? Does
he not command you, that you are not to marry? Does he not
command you to abstain from meats which God hath created to be
received with thanksgiving of them which believe? as Paul
writes in the fourth chapter of his first epistle to
Timothy.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> The devil sits in your cheeks; the devil
and his mother play with your ugly mouth, that you know how to
twist all the holy Scriptures according to your heretical
notions, and to turn them on your thumb. But just wait, I shall
show you very well; that our holy father the pope is the vicar
of God, for did not Christ say to St. Peter;"Feed my sheep;" and
that upon him he would build his church? And did he not also
give St. Peter the keys of heaven, and all priestly authority,
to loose from sin, and to bind, or to remit and to retain? And
do not the holy popes sit upon the same seat, as successors of
St. Peter, and have the same command and the priestly authority
of the keys of heaven, to forgive sins and to retain them,
through absolution after confession? What do you say to this
now? let us hear.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  Christ said, that upon this rock (that is, upon such a
faith as Peter confessed, Matt. 17:16) He would build His
church; He said nothing about a seat, or of vicars, or of
successors, or popes, or of priestly authority.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> He certainly spoke of the keys of heaven,
and of loosing and binding. And if there were no pope, or high
priest, nor subpriests who then should have the authority, to
hear confession, to absolve, and to forgive sins? scavengers,
etc., I suppose.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i> Christ is our only true high priest, as Paul
writes to the Hebrews, in the 2nd, 3rd, 5th, 6th, 7th, 8th
and 9th chapters.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> That is just where I wanted to have you;
for if St. Paul thereby means that besides Christ no other high
priests or common priests are necessary, why then does he say
in the fourth chapter of the first epistle to the
Corinthians, "I will that every one so account of us, as of
Christ's priests over the sacraments of God?" that is,
administer the sacraments of the altar, of baptism, of
confirmation, of extreme unction, of marriage, of confession
and absolution, of penitence, and of consecrating and anointing
priests. What do you hold concerning priestly estate, or the
sacrament of the priesthood? Let us hear.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  Next to Christ, we believers in Christ are all priests
alike, according to the words of Peter in the second chapter
(9th verse) of hij first epistle, where he says to the
believers in Chfist, "But ye are a chosen generation, a royal
priesthood, a holy nation." Again; Rev. 1:5, 6, "Christ who
loved us, and washed us from our sins in his own blood. and
hath made us kings and priests unto God and his Father." Again,
Rev. 5:9, 10, "For thou wast slain, and hast redeemed us [to
God] by thy blood out of every kindred, and tongue, and people,
and nation; and hast made us unto our God kings and
priests."</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Tush, tush! now you begin to preach again,
do you? keep silence, or reply to me in regard to what St. Paul
writes in the fourth chapter of his first epistle to the
Corinthians, "I will that every one so account of us, as of
Christ's priests over the sacraments of God." Answer to this
***</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  With your permission, Paul does not write as you say,
and hence there is nothing to answer to it.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn. O you</i> cursed Anabaptist that you are; I
could swear by the saints, that St. Paul writes as I say: what
do you say of this accursed, hellish, devilish heretic?</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  The Lord God forgive you this judging and cursing, and
do not account it to your own condemnation. Christ also says
(Matt. 5), do not swear an oath; but let your communication be,
Yea, yea, Nay, nay.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, this means that one is not to swear a
false oath; but what I would swear is true. But you Anabaptists
also have the fancy, that you are not to swear any manner of
oaths. Bah, what a lousy fancy this is I I should like to hear
W_ by one may not swear a good oath.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  Because Christ, in Matt. 5, says, "Ye have heard that it
hath been said to them of old time, Thou shalt not forswear
thyself, but shalt perform unto the Lord thine oaths; but I say
unto you, Swear not at all; neither by heaven; for it is God's
throne: nor by the earth; for it is his footstool. But let your
communication be, Yea, yea; Nay, nay: for whatsoever is more
than these cometh of evil." In like manner, also James savs, in
the fifth chapter (v. 12), "But above all things, my brethren,
swear not, neither by heaven, neither by the earth, neither by
any other oath: but let your</p>

</div><div id="778"> 

<p>yea be yea; and your nay, nay: lest you fall into
condemnation."</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn. Is</i> it true? in this you would follow St.
James; but when he in the same chapter speaks of the sacrament
of extreme unction, saying, "Is any sick, call for the priests
of the church, and cause him to be anointed;" and also, where,
in the same chapter, he speaks of the sacrament of confession;
herein you heretics are not willing to follow him. I have asked
you once or twice, what you think of confession, and of the
power of absolution, or remission and retention of sins; but
you do not reply to me in regard to this.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  You answer yourself, saying, "Who then should have the
authority of hearing confession, absolving, and forgiving sins?
scavengers, etc., I suppose." For since you supposed the same I
left it to you to answer.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Well, answer me then now, what you think of
the sacrament of confession and absolution.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  My answer is: If you would take and understand
confession (which you papists now use) from the fifth chapter
of James, you must also confess your sins to him that confesses
his sins to you; for James says, "Confess your faults one to
another." Now if I confess to you all my sins, will you also
confess your sins to me? I think not, and that you yourself
would much rather acknowledge and say, that James did not mean
such a confession as you papists now employ.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn. * * * You</i> accursed Anabaptist that you are.
You seek nothing but to tangle up everything that is advanced
against you- the devil wags your tongue. But let us hear what
you can say against this, where Christ says, "Go and shew
yourselves to the priests." Matt. 8:4.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  This Christ said to those whom He had healed and
cleansed from leprosy, that they should go and show their
bodies to the priests and let them see, that they were clean
again, in order that they might go among the people again, from
whom they had been separated on account of their leprosy.
Matthew 8:4; Luke 17:14.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> * * * Bah, it was plainly said: Go and
confess to the priest: for so our mother the holy Catholic
Roman church understands it. This was the reason why Christ
gave His vicar, St. Peter, the keys, that he might also have
the power to bind and loose from sin, or to forgive and to
retain, after confession as I told you. Hence, answer me once,
but in a few words, without much preaching, see!</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  From this power of the keys, which Christ gave Peter,
it is not to be understood, that you priests in popery have
power to forgive or to retain sin.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Is it true? would accursed heretic say that
the power which Christ gave His successor or vicar, St. Peter,
does not pertain to us priests? What! no! do not the popes, as
the successors of St. Peter, who sit in his seat, and we
priests, still have the power as well as did the scribes and
Pharisees, as the successors of Moses, who at the time of
Christ still sat in Moses' seat? of whom Christ says, in the
twenty-third chapter (vs. 1, 2) of Matthew's gospel, "The
scribes and the Pharises sit in Moses' seat: all therefore
whatsoever they bid you observe, that observe and do." What do
you say to this, eh? Let us hear it.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  With your permission, but do not get angry; for I
should have been afraid of incurring your abuse, if I had
compared you to the scribes and Pharisees; but since you
compare yourselves to them, I will reply to you. What Christ
means is this: Whatsoever they command you to do from the law
of Moses, that do. But He also commands His disciples, in Matt.
16:6, that they should beware of the leaven of the Pharisees.
And though the Pharisees and scribes should have boasted
themselves of the power which Moses had, as you priests boast
of having the power which Peter received from Christ, of
forgiving sin, who would have believed the Pharisees? since
Christ pronounces woe over them so many times, Matt. 23, "Woe
unto you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites! for ye shut up the
kingdom of heaven against men</p>

<p>for ye neither go in yourselves, neither suffer ye them that
are entering to go in. Woe unto you, scribes and Pharisees,
hypocrites! for ye devour widows' houses, and for a pretence
make long prayers. Woe unto you," etc.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Fie, tush, tush; hear all this preaching.
Bah, I know myself quite well, that Christ cries woe, woe, but
do you think, that I have come here to hear preaching? I can
preach myself, that I can.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  Still, you desired that I should reply to your
comparison between the authority of the Pharisees and that of
you priests.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Ali, bah! do you think you can satisfy me
with such a meagre answer? By no means * * * we priests do not
care for this; though the schibes and Pharisees were not of
much account, their authority was none the less, on that
account; and just so it is also with our priestly authority,
after confession to absolve from and forgive, or to retain,
sin, seel</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  What authority has a man that is already himself
excluded from heaven, to help another into it; for Christ says,
Matt. 5:20, "Except your righteousness shall exceed the
righteousness of the scribes and Pharisees, ye shall in no case
enter into the kingdom of heaven." How shall an unrighteous man
forgive the sins of one whose righteousness is greater than his
own?</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn. My</i> lord the inquisitor wrote truly enough
from Kortrijk, where you were born, that your tongue was well
hung, and that it was labor lost to dispute against you. In
troth, if you are so exceedingly opposed to all priestly
authority, and say, that all men that believe, yea, even your
wives</p>

</div><div id="779"> 

<p>and children, are all priests, why do you have more
episcopal authority than the other Anabaptists? For you are
their bishop, teacher and preacher. You rebaptize them, lay
your hands upon their heads, and endow them all alike with the
Holy Ghost, as they think. Hence, let us hear what you yourself
think of your episcopal authority; for no one can lawfully
administer the sacrament of confirmation, unless he be a
bishop, or at least a suffragan. Hence, let us hear once, how
you administer the sacrament of confirmation, and what you
think of it.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  I know nothing to say of episcopal authority, or of
confirmation. How then should I administer it, or what should I
think of it; for confirmation is a bugbear about which I know
nothing.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Is it possible, do you Anabaptists call the
sacrament of confirmation a bugbear? Ah, accursed heretic, the
devil take you into the fire of hell, to burn you forever;
see!</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  Do not get so angry and excited, for I call it a
strange bugbear, because it is so unknown to me. But tell me
what it is, and what you hold concerning it; then I can tell
you better what I think of it.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, this blockhead presumes to be a bishop
of the Anabaptists, and does not yet know what the sacrament of
confirmation is. If you are a bishop, you ought to confirm
yourself. My lords, see once, what a fine bishop the
Anabaptists have had out there in the Gruthuysbosch, who
preached so many sermons there; is it not a fine bishop,
teacher and preacher? Bah, see once, with what we have been
vexed and tormented</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  I am no bishop, nor do I consider myself a teacher; but
I have sometimes led the brethren and sisters and converts of
our church, with exhortation from the Word of God or the holy
Scriptures, according to my small ability.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, you are a fine leader, that you do not
yet know the sacrament of confirmation. Confirmation is, that
the bishop or the suffragan anoints the grown children, and
sometimes also adult persons (that are not yet confirmed) with
the holy chrism on their forehead, and gives them a blow on the
cheek, in token that they should remember that they have been
confirmed; which confirmation signifies the confirmation of
baptism. Now you will understand or know it, I think.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  Just as little as before, since I also do not know what
chrism and the confirmation of baptism are.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> It seems that you know nothing concerning
the Christian religion; so does the devil hold you by the
throat. And you presume nevertheless to be a teacher and
preacher of the Anabaptists. Bah, is it not a shame, that you
have to be taught yourself yet, how children are confirmed, and
that chrism is a substance mixed together of holy, consecrated
things, which must not be told you? and that one has to teach
you yet, that con firmation signifies the imposition of the
priest's hands, as the apostles laid their hands upon them that
were baptized. Do you not yet understand it, blockhead that you
are?</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  In the nineteenth chapter of Acts we read, that, after
Paul had caused some Christian believers to be baptized at
Ephesus, and had then laid his hands upon them, the Holy Ghost
came down upon them, and they spake with tongues, and
prophesied. Hence I do not believe that your confirmation or
chrism, and your blow on the cheek, have anything in common
with the imposition of the hands of the apostles.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Is it possible, so outspoken? you accursed
Anabaptist, though you do not believe it, the sacrament of
confirmation is therefore not one whit worse, for we Catholics
believe it so much the more. My lords, what do you say of this
accursed Anabaptist? for he does not believe in anything, that
he don't.</p>

<p><i>Recorder.</i> Suffer yourself to be instructed, Jacob,
and believe that which a Christian ought tc believe, and don't
argue so much.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  My lords, with your permission, I only answer to all
his questions, and I believe only that which is written in the
holy Scriptures.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Do you? * * * for you do not believe, that
St. Paul, in the beginning of the fourth chapter of his first
epistle to the Corinthians, writes, "I will that every one so
account of us, as of priests of Christ over the sacraments of
God." And as I said, St. James writes the same in his fifth
chapter, "Is any sick, call for the priests of the church; and
let them pray over him, and anoint him with oil in the name of
the Lord." Are we priests then not dispensers or administrators
of God's sacraments? and you say now, that you believe in all
that is written in the holy Scriptures. It remains now to be
seen or heard, what you believe concerning the sacrament of
holy unction, of which St. James writes, as I tell you. Let us
hear once.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  I do not believe that the anointing with oil of which
James writes has anything in common with the oil with which you
anoint the sick among you; for the oil of which James writes
healed the sick, as did also the oil concerning which Mark
writes in the sixth chapter, that the apostle anointed with oil
many that were sick, and healed them. But however much you
priests adjure and conjure your oil, it can nevertheless not
heal the sick; hence, that was another oil, than your oil which
you call a sacrament.</p>

<p>Fr. Corn. A thousand devils (God bless us) what ails this
hellish heretic now, that he makes sorcery of our reading,
consecrating, blessing, and sanctifying over the sacrament of
extreme unction. You bewitched, bedeviled, possessed
Anabaptist, have reproved me once, because I cursed and
condemned you; but I should go at you quite differently yet, in
cursing, condemning andanathematizing</p>

</div><div id="780"> 

<p>you; but you are not worthy that I should so incense and
excite myself about you. Therefore I tell you, yes, we
Catholics call holy unction a sacrament, and regard it as a
sacrament, and it is a sacrament, in spite of your mouth. Do
you understand this, you bewitched, accursed Anabaptist, that
you are?</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  If you want to imitate all the things which the
apostles did, and regard them all as sacraments, why do you not
also regard your aprons or handkerchiefs as sacraments, and lay
them upon the sick, as Paul did? For what greater sacredness
was there in the oil of which James writes, than in Paul's
aprons, by which he also healed the sick, as is written in the
nineteenth chapter of the Acts of the apostles?</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> If the devil does not wag your tongue, I do
not understand the matter. You accursed Anabaptists may
yourselves make a sacrament of your filthy handkerchiefs or
aprons; for you people have no sacrament, but we Catholics have
seven sacraments; is it not enough, eh?</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  Yea, in troth; for since the term sacrament is not once
mentioned in the holy Scriptures, you have only seven too
many.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, does not St. Paul call marriage a
sacrament? And he does not bestow too much honor upon marriage,
when he says, in the fifth chapter to the Ephesians: This
sacrament is great. Would you reject this honor, put it from
you, and trample upon it with your feet, I suppose?</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  Paul says, "Two shall be one flesh; this is a great
mystery." Eph. 5:31, 32. If you want to make sacraments of all
the mysteries, I am surprised that you have only seven
sacraments.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> It is easy to hear, that you Anabaptists do
not esteem marriage very highly; for, if we priests should say,
that priesthood only is a sacrament, and marriage not, I think
you would reply, Show us where priesthood is called a sacrament, as is
marriage. But when I consider the matter well, you Anabaptists
do not observe marriage, since you have the women and maidens
in common, and run together promiscuously, like dogs, the
father with his daughter, the mother with her son, the
brother.with his sister, just like the beasts -is this not a
fine thing?</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  With your permission, don't get incensed, we are
slandered in regard to this.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Ah bah! would you deny it, what ails you?</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  If it were true, I would not deny it; but this can
never be said with truth of us.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah! bah I this is the most aggravating
monstrosity yet. I thought you would go and show or prove to me
from the Holy Scriptures, that the women may be had in common;
and do you now want to deny it, eh!</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  But should I not deny those things that are lies?</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> This miserable Anabaptist would give me the
lie. But do you think you can swindle me out of a matter which
I so certainly know to be true? Bah, why will you deny it,
seeing you have already so flatly denied the five sacraments,
which is a hundred thousand times worse and more damnable, than
to make common all the women and maidens of the whole world,
that it is.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  You are very wrong in accusing us with it; for it is
something of which we are innocent.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Ah bah, now it is getting to be downright
idiocy with this denying. I am mad and indignant enough to jump
right out of my skin, that this accursed Anabaptist here would
deny a matter so public, and known to all the world. Ali bah, I
will stake my neck, that I have preached more than a hundred
times, that you Anabaptists have the women and maidens in
common, and that you also sever the marriage tie, giving to one
man, when he is tired of his wife, another man's wife; and, in
like manner, to one woman, when she is tired of her husband,
another woman's husband. Don't I know these things, eh?</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  I have heard it said sometimes, that a certain Friar
Cornelis here, often preaches such things concerning us: is it
you, permit me to ask?</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Yes, I am Friar Cornelis, who preaches such
things concerning you. Just take a good look at me. I ought to
know that I am the man; and I will also clearly show to you,
that I preach it with truth; for were they not Anabaptists who
at Amsterdam, and elsewhere in Holland, ran stark naked through
the streets, men and women, young maidens and boys, and said to
one another: My spirit desires your flesh; eh?</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  Those were not of our brethren; for formerly there were
such false brethren, as David Joris and Hendrick Nicolaus, who
taught these things in secret, and said that no one might have
anything as his own, and that therefore, no one might marry a
wife for himself, but that women ought to be had in common.
Others also wanted to prove from the Scriptures, that women
that are unmannered or disorderly might be abandoned.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn. * * * A</i>h; bah, why would you deny, that you
Anabaptists have the women in common. They certainly were
Anabaptists, who, at Amsterdam, forcibly took possession of the
city hall, and who overpowered and took the city of Munster,
and afterwards were besieged, bombarded, stormed, defeated,
captured, and put to death, with their king, Jan Beukelss, a
tailor of Leyden. They certainly had the women in common, yea,
not only the women, but also the property; yea, they robbed
churches and convents, in Holland, Friesland, and Gelderland.
Why would you then say, that these also were not of your
brethren? You must be an idiot, I think.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  These all belonged to the same (strange) false
brethren; for as they taught, that women might not be held as
own, so they also taught that</p>

</div><div id="781"> 

<p>property might not be owned individually, but was to be held
in common, and that the property of the papists belonged to the
Christians, and that they might seize it wherever they could,
in order thereby to exterminate the ungodly with the external
sword, and to abolish all governmer:t, in order thus to set up
a new kingdom of Christ in this world. And through these this
unchristian report has unjustly come upon us.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn. Is</i> it possible? It remains to be seen yet,
whether this evil report has unjustly come upon you. If you
Anabaptists also had a head, like the Calvinists, you would
persecute, trouble, torment, and ma rtyrize us Catholics just
as they do; this I swear to you. Well, enough of this; but that
you would deny, that you Anabaptists have the women in common,
this I cannot take in, or swallow. You may deny, twist, sneak,
dive, and cover up as much as you will, but you shall not
swindle me out of it, that you shall not.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  We are not the only ones that have to bear this from
you; for you also often preach, I understand, that the
Calvinists have the women in common.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> And so they do; for in the point of having
the women in common they agree with the Anabaptists. Ali, bah,
don't I know what the Calvinists and Calvinistresses do when
they blow out the candles after they have held their accursed,
devilish supper. Bah, you want to teach me how to preach, I
suppose; see.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  If this were true, it would certainly now be known to
all the world; for the Calvinists have had public churches, in
which they have preached, and held the supper; and if they had
undertaken to put forth such things in them, in regard to
having the women in common, as you say, what strange things
would be noised abroad through every country.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn. O you</i> accursed Anabaptist, and will you now
also begin to upbraid me with slandering the accursed
Calves-tails,* eh? Don't I say that they do this together,
after they have held their devil's supper when the candles have
been extinguished? bah, what strange things can be said of a
matter which no one can see? But you Anabaptists, tell us
something about your supper; or don't you have any, I suppose,
since you don't know anything to say about sacraments? Hence,
speak, and let us hear: What do you hold concerning the
sacrament of the altar?</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  I have never seen nor read this name in the holy
Scriptures; hence I can say nothing about it.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Fie, the devil and his mother are here
again already. How would you have it called the supper, as the
Beggarst call it, I suppose, eh?</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  I have read much in the holy Scriptures concerning the
breaking of bread in remembrance of the broken body of Christ,
Matt. 26; Mark 14; Luke 22; Acts 2; I Cor. 11; but of the
sacrament of the altar I have never read.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, you certainly have the Scriptures at
your finger ends; and because you Anabaptists will read nothing
but simply the holy Scriptures, therefore it is, that you never
read of a sacrament of the altar. For as I am informed by my
lord, the provincial of the Augustinians, you flatly refuse to
hear, by way of instruction, anything that the old fathers, or
teachers of the holy Catholic church, write; as St. Ambrose,
St. Jerome, St. Augustine. St. Gregory, St. Chrysostom, St.
Bernard, St. Anselm, St. Bede, Doctor Sanctus, and many others,
yea, such as are more ancient yet, as: Irenaeus, Cyprian,
Basil, Cyril. and Tertullian. If you would read these, you
would find the sacrament of the altar mentioned frequently by
many different names, sometimes the eucharist, now a holocaust,
then a sacrifice, oblation, etc. But you Anabaptists would far
rather delve and root in the accursed, damnable books of your
arch-heretic Menno Simons. And therefore you do not know
anything of the sacrament of the altar-is this not a fine
thing?</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  We are satisfied with the simple holy Scriptures; for
all that is necessary for us to know for our salvation, we find
abundantly contained in them, and we need not to search the
doctrines of men.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Tush, tush, speak and let us hear, whether
you also believe, that Christ is truly present in the
consecrated host with His natural flesh and blood? Now, do you
understand it better so?</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  Now I understand it much less yet, since nothing is
taught in the holy Scriptures of a consecrated host; and
therefore we also do not trouble ourselves with such things,
but use in our church the memorials of the Lord's body, as I
told you.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, what monsters are these memorials?
This begins to sound quite Zwinglian and Calvinistic; and are
you Anabaptists also Sacramentarians-I suppose so. Bah, what is
it about these memorials? Let us hear once.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  The memorials are bread and wine, which we use in
remembrance of the body and blood of Christ, because Christ in
His last supper commands us, that we are to break and eat the
bread in remembrance of His body, which was broken on the
cross; and that we are to distribute the cup with wine, and all
drink out of it, in remembrance of His blood, which was shed
for many, for the remission of sins.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn. Is</i> it possible! you are fine fellows with
your memorials. My lords, what do you think of this accursed,
hellish devil's crew? for they are Anabaptists and
Sacramentarians. Bahl Jesus, Jesus, worthy mother of God,
protect us; what abominableness this is I My, my, my, oh. oh,
oh, oh! My lords, now you can well hear, what a Beelzebub brood
and hellish generation you have here in</p>

<p class="c8">* A term of derision chosen because of its
assonance, in the original ("Calversteerten"
and"Calversteerinnen"), to the name Calvinists.-Transl.</p>

<p class="c8">** An opprobrious appellation for the
Protestants.-Tr.</p>

</div><div id="782"> 

<p>Flanders, in the city of Bruges, and you sometimes ridicule
my sermons yet, when I preach against these accursed heretics,
and say, "That lousy little fool, the crazy friar Cornelis is
always engaged with the heretics in his pulpit." Hear now for
yourselves whether I have not just reason for it. And now
listen, you Sacramentarian: Why then did not Christ say,"Take
and eat; this bread is a memorial of my body, and this wine is
a memorial of my blood?" But He said expressly, "Take and eat;
this is my body." Further, "Drink ye all out of this cup; this
is my blood." Answer me once in regard to this, * * *</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  I am heartily sorry that you always get so incensed and
excited at my answers, and that you do not consider, that Paul
says to Titus, in the first chapter that a teacher must not be
angry, snappish or contentious.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Tush, tush, hold your tongue, and answer me
without much talk or crackling.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  Christ did not mean that the apostles should eat His
body, which the day after was crucified; nor drink His blood,
which the next day was shed; but His meaning was, that His body
was food for the soul, and His blood drink for the soul, even
as bread and wine are food and drink for the body; hence He
said, "Take and eat; my body is this, or, my body is such as
this bread is," namely, food.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Ali, bah, what madness this is; now I could
jump out of my skin for anger, yea, should I not? For Christ
did not say, "My body is this, or my body is such." How you
heretics pervert and twist the naked, plain words, This, is my
body.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  It means the same to say, "This is my body, or, my body
is this," when regard is had to Christ's true meaning; for
since His body was food, therefore He took bread and said, "My
body is this, or this is my body," namely, food.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn. Is</i> this not enough to make one crazy? -God
bless us again, and the worthy mother of God. Bah, did not
Christ say, "Take and eat; this is my body, which is given for
you." Now, was it the same body, which was given them? then it
was not bread which He gave His apostles to eat. Let us hear
what you will answer to this.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  Even as I answered, that Christ says, that the same
body which was given for us is food for the soul, as bread is
for the body of man.</p>

<p><i>Fr.</i> Corn. Bah, what mischief is this, and shall I not
be able to advance something against you, by which I can once
stop your accursed mouth? Did not St. Paul say, in the eleventh
chapter of his first epistle to the Corinthians, "Whosoever
shall eat this bread, and drink this cup of the Lord,
unworthily, shall be guilty of the body and blood of the Lord?"
And should it be only a bit of common, simple bread, and a
draught of stale wine? What does St. Paul make such an
exceeding great matter of it, and say, that a man should
examine himself, and eat worthily of that bread, and drink
worthily of that cup; for he that eateth and drink eth
unworthily, eateth and drinketh judgment to himself, not
discerning the Lord's body. Bah, you accursed Sacramentarian,
is it still only a bit of common bread, or a memorial, eh?</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  The unworthy eating of the bread and the unworthy
drinking of the cup of which Paul writes, lies in our
conscience; for if I want to unite with the body of Christ, and
with many brethren become one bread, and am at variance or in
contention with any brother, I eat unworthily of that bread,
and drink unworthily of the cup of the Lord; I shall thereby be
guilty of the body and blood of the Lord. Therefore let a man
examine himself, how he stands with his brother; for he that
comes hypocritically, with a gnawing, troubled conscience, and
eats and drinks unworthily, the same eats and drinks judgment
to himself, not discerning that the body of the Lord in the
breaking of the bread (which we break) becomes one with, or is
participated in by us; and that the cup of blessing (which we
bless) becomes one with, or is participated in by us in the
blood of Christ, as Paul writes in the tenth chapter of the
first epistle to the Corinthians.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> There you are caught; for if it is a
communion or participation in the body and blood of Christ, it
is certainly no longer bread and wine, I think.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  Can you not understand, that by the participation in
the broken bread we only signify and remember, that through the
breaking of the body of Christ on the cross, and through the
participation in the cup, we are become partakers of His blood,
and have thereby obtained communion with His body. As we all
become partakers of, and have communion in, a bread which we
break and eat, so we being many are one body with the body of
Christ, because we all are partakers of, and have communion in,
His body, which we signify and remember, when we make ourselves
partakers and communicants of one bread. This is the meaning of
Paul in the tenth chapter of the first epistle to the
Corinthians.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Ah, bah, now I understand clearly, out and
out, that you Anabaptists are so wicked, false, vile and crafty
sacramentarians, as the *</p>

<p>calves-tails can be; for the sacrament with you is nothing
but a representation, signification and remembrance of the body
and blood of Christ, and only a bit of bread and a cup of wine.
I * * * upon your bit of bread, and your cup, by which you
would represent, signify and remember the body of Christ,
see.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  I beg pardon, this is strange language concerning the
ordinance of Christ; for He has nevertheless instituted the
breaking of the bread and the drinking of the cup for our
remembrance. But if the bread is Christ Himself, as you say,
how shall it be to us a remembrance of Christ, who, according
to your saying, is present there Himself? And if you get so
angry at me, because I called the com-</p>

</div><div id="783"> 

<p>munion only bread and the cup, you must also be very angry
at Paul, because, I Cor. 11:26, he writes, "As often as ye eat
this bread, and drink this cup," etc.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Silence I not so much talk; hold your
tongue. For though St. Paul calls the sacrament of the altar
so, it was nevertheless Christ Himself, as He was born of His
blessed mother, and died on the cross, see.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  This is a strange notion of yours; for if it is Christ
Himself as He died on the cross, then it must also be Christ
Himself as He rose from the dead, and ascended up to
heaven.</p>

<p><i>Fr.</i> Corn. Yea, in troth, and as He sits at the right
hand of His Father, see.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  Why then did Paul say to the Corinthians, "As often as
ye eat this bread, and drink this cup, shew ye the Lord's death
till he come?" For if the bread had been Christ Himself, then
the Corinthians might well have said, "It is no longer necessary
to show the Lord's death; for He is now come; He is here; this
bread which we break and eat is Christ Himself."</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, talk and chatter as much as you will;
I flatly say, that the Corinthians ate Christ with skin and
hair, as we Catholics also do, bah, see.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  Yet Christ says, John 16:28, "I leave the world, and go
to the Father." Again, verse 5, "But now I go my way to him that
sent me." Again, verse 7, "Nevertheless I tell you the truth; It
is expedient for you that I go away: for if I go not away, the
Comforter will not come unto you; but if I depart, I will send
him unto you." Again, verse 10, "Because I go to the Father, and
ye see me no more." Again, John 12:8: Me ye have not
always.</p>

<p><i>Fr.</i> Corn. Bah, you begin to preach again, do you? And
do you think that you can spirit away and wrest from me
everything? but wait, wait, I shall come at you in another way.
It is John here, John there; but why do you not tell me of what
John writes in the sixth chapter, where Christ says, "The bread
that I will give is my flesh," eh?</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  Christ says in the same chapter, that He is the bread
which came down from heaven. Here He does not speak of a bread
that grows out of the earth.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, is this not a wicked, vile, crafty and
cunning heretic; for hear how the devil wags his accursed
tongue, my, my, my I</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  Yet I do not say anything but what Christ Himself says
and means; for these are His own words, throughout the whole
chapter, "Verily, verily, I say unto you, Moses gave you not
that bread from heaven; but my Father giveth you the true bread
from heaven. For the bread of God is He which cometh down from
heaven, and giveth life unto the world." Again, "I am the bread
of life." Again, "Your fathers did eat manna in the wilderness,
and are dead. This is the bread which cometh down from heaven,
that a man may eat thereof and not die. I am the living bread
which came down from heaven: if any man eat of this bread, he
shall live forever: and the bread that I will give is my flesh,
which I will give for the life of the world." Again,"Verily,
verily, I say unto you, Except ye eat the flesh of the Son of
man, and drink his blood, ye have no life in you. He that
eateth thy flesh, and drinketh my blood, dwelleth in me, and I
in him." Again, "When Jesus knew in himself that his disciples
murmured at it, he said unto them, Doth this offend you? what
and if ye shall see the Son of Man ascend up where he was
before? It is the Spirit that quickeneth; the flesh profiteth
nothing: the words that I speak unto you, they are spirit, and
they are life. John 6."</p>

<p>From all these words of Christ we are to understand, that by
eating His flesh He means nothing else but His Word, or His
doctrine, by which we attain to the faith, without which faith
in Him we cannot be saved, and live forever.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, are you done preaching now, eh? Did it
not seem to you that you were standing in the Gruthuysbusch and
preached, eh? But, Oh, you audacious heretic, show it more
fully, that Christ means nothing else by this eating of His
flesh, than His Word or doctrine. Bah, would you array yourself
against the holy council of Trent? For there all the cardinals,
bishops and fathers understood these words of Christ with
reference to the worthy sacrament of the altar. Hence, let us
hear, how you will prove the contrary, you accursed Anabaptist
and Sacramentarian that you are.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  You have heard, that Christ in His sermon said to the
Jews, "The bread of God is he which cometh down from heaven, and
giveth life unto the world. I am that bread of life: if any man
eat of this bread, he shall live forever. He that eateth my
flesh, and drinketh my blood, dwelleth in me, and I in him."
Now you must understand, that if Christ by this bread, or by
this flesh, meant His natural body, as you say, all men to whom
you, according to your saying, give it to eat, would live
forever, and none of them would be damned; for if they had once
eaten it, they would dwell in Christ and Christ would dwell in
them.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, hear once, my lords, is it not
astonishing, how this lousy weaver, this chandler, comes by
this great wisdom. Bah I this filthy</p>

<p>bishop, Jacob, would be wiser than all our holy cardinals,
bishops, and theologians, or doctors of divinity, who, in the
holy council of Trent, by the inspiration of the Holy Ghost,
unanimously concluded, that all the words of Christ, in the
sixth chapter of St. John are to be understood with reference
to the holy, worthy sacrament of the altar. And now this * * *
bishop Jacob the weaver would like to make us believe, that
Christ by His blood meant nothing else than His Word and
preaching; is this not a fine thing?</p>

<p><i>Clerk of the criminal court.</i> Suffer yourself to be
instructed, Jacob, and do not argue so much.</p>

<p><i>Recorder. I</i> also desire this of you, Jacob, and do
not rely so much upon your own wisdom.</p>

</div><div id="784"> 

<p><i>Jac.</i>  I beg your pardon; my lords, I do not rely upon my own
wisdom, but I rely upon the words of Christ.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, do you? bah, you do what I will not
mention. Bah, you cunning, vile, crafty heretic in quoting the
words of Christ, you have very slyly left out, and omitted to
say, that in the same chapter He also says, "My flesh is meat
indeed, and my blood is drink indeed." Bah, do you think you
can deceive us by such rascality, eh?</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  I have not omitted these words of Christ from
craftiness or rascality, but they did not enter my mind; and it
is not necessary for me to omit these words, since they tend to
confirm the answer I gave you. Namely, if Christ by the eating
and drinking means His own natural flesh and blood, as you say,
they will all live forever, and not die, or be damned, who have
once eaten and drunk in your church, no matter what evil-doers
they may be; for you deny the sacrament of the altar to no one;
every one that comes partakes of it, and there also come
drunkards, gluttons, misers, cheats, swearers, blasphemers,
contentious, envious, and unrighteous persons, whores, rogues,
adulterers, murderers, and many other wicked people, concerning
whom Paul says, I Cor. 6:10; Gal. 5:21, that they shall not
inherit the kingdom of heaven.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, but those who first confess
themselves, and are absolved by the priest, and then worthily
receive the holy sacrament, they will live forever, see.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  Christ does not speak here of eating and drinking
worthily or unworthily; but He says, that all who eat this
flesh, and drink this blood shall live forever.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> But St. Paul speaks about eating and
drinking the body and blood of Christ unworthily, to the
Corinthians, in the eleventh chapter of his first epistle, see
there once.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  Hence the breaking of bread of which Paul writes, in
another, ordinance of Christ, different from this.</p>

<p><i>Fr, Corn.</i> But you blockheaded bishop, Christ with
these words, in John 6, did not yet institute the sacrament of
the altar, but promised to institute it; saying, "The bread that
I will give [that is, which He will give when He institutes the
mass at His last supper] is my flesh, and the cup of wine which
I will give is my blood," not wine nor any substance of wine;
so the bread also is no substance of bread; but my flesh, which
I will give for the life of the world. Bah, now where are you?
what can you reply to this? now you are caught.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  In regard to this, I reply again, that if Christ means
such flesh as you according to your saying, give men to eat,
not one of these will die or be damned, according to the words
of Christ, but they will all live forever.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, for this reason I again ask you, for
whom confession and absolution are instituted? for the pigs, I
suppose, eh?</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  You may very likely suppose this. The blood of Christ
was shed for men for the remission of sins, as He says in His
last supper, which you now begin to call the institution of the
mass. Matthew 26:28.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Yes, the supper was the institution of the
mass in spite of your teeth. Let us hear once, what you think
of the mass.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  Is your mass as something different yet, than your
sacrament of the altar?</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Ali, bah, you are a preacher, a teacher,
yea, a bishop (though you deny it) of the Anabaptists, and do
not know yet, that the mass is something different than the
sacrament of the altar. Bah! shame upon you.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  Alas! because these are all things which are neither
mentioned nor known in the holy Scriptures therefore I do not
understand them.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn. * * * Though</i> they are things which are not
so named in the holy Scriptures, they are nevertheless known in
the Scriptures; for the mass is a sacrifice or offering, in
which the priest sacrifices and offers up the real flesh and
blood of Christ for the living, and for the dead, or for the
souls that are in purgatory. Bah, do you understand now what
the mass is, eh I</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  I do not believe that you can sacrifice and offer up
Christ again. But I believe, that Christ Himself was an
offering on the cross for the living and the dead: for Paul
writes to the Hebrews, in the ninth chapter, that Christ by His
own blood entered in once into the holy place, having obtained
eternal redemption for us."For, if the blood of bulls and of
goats, [and the ashes of a heifer] sprinkling the unclean,
sanctifieth to the purifying of the flesh; how much more shall
the blood of Christ, who through the eternal Spirit offered
himself without spot to God, purge our conscience from dead
works, to serve the living God?"</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, you have preached enough now; for my
head begins to ache severely from it. Hence let us now dispute
about Anabaptism and infant baptism, and be done with it.
Speak, and let us hear why the sacrament of baptism is not
necessary to children for their salvation, as you Anabaptists
preach and teach; though ill betide you.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  Christ says, Mark 16:16, "He that believeth and is
baptized shall be saved: but he that believeth not shall be
damned." Now if one of the two were necessary to children for
their salvation, faith is more necessary to them for salvation
than baptism.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Indeed? and would you thus exclude from
heaven all the poor, innocent children that die unbaptized in
original sin? and would you relegate them with so many hundred
thousand millions to hell into eternal perdition, eh?</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  No, we do not want to do this; for we believe that
infants are nevertheless saved, though they die unbaptized; for
they are baptized and cleansed in the blood of Jesus Christ, as
John says, in the first chapter (v. 7) of his first
epistle, "The</p>

</div><div id="785"> 

<p>blood of Jesus Christ his son cleanseth us from alt sin."
Christ, also (Matt. 19:14) says, "For of such is the kingdom of
heaven."</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Yes, if they are first washed and cleansed
by baptism from original sin which they have inherited from
Adam; otherwise they go to the devil, into perdition, see.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  Paul writes to the Corinthians, in his first epistle,
in the fifteenth chapter (v. 22), "As in Adam all die, even so
in Christ shall all be made alive." Again, to the Romans, in
the fifth chapter (verses 12, 1 5);"As by one man sin entered
into the world, and death by sin; so grace hath abounded by
Jesus Christ."</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Tush, tush, tush, much talk and little
information, these are all things that do not concern
unbaptized and uncircumcised children. Hence I tell you
plainly, that all the children that in the Old Testament died
without circumcision, and now in the New Testament without
baptism,</p>

<p>and will yet die, are damned; and he that says otherwise is
a heretic. But now, since you Anabaptists so little esteem
baptism, that you allow children to die unbaptized, thinking
that they will be saved nevertheless, why then do you who have
been baptized once have yourselves rebaptized, and teach
others, that they must also suffer themselves to be rebaptized,
if they would be saved. Ah, bah, is this not a hellish,
devilish madness; frenzy, demonianism, and fascination?</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  We, according to the command of Christ, baptize the
believing, but you, contrary to His commands, baptize the
unbelieving.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Indeed; Anabaptist? Bah, though the
children are not believing, they must nevertheless be baptized,
if they are to be saved; for in the third chapter of St. John's
Gospel we read that Christ said to 1Vicodemus, "Verily, verily,
except every man be born again of water and -of the Spirit, he
cannot enter into the kingdom of God." Bah, is this not saying
plainly enough, that children must be baptized, though they are
yet unbelieving? why then would you Anabaptists upbraid us by
saying that-we baptize the unbelieving, and that you bap tize
the believing? Ha I accursed Anabaptist thai you are I Bah,
answer me now in regard to this. ***</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  Water baptism signifies the washing of regeneration in
which Christ baptizes with the Spirit, as John the Baptist
said, Mark 1, "I have baptized you with water; but one that
cometh after me shall baptize you with the Holy Ghost." Also in
Matthew 3, and Luke 3, we read, "He shall baptize you with the
Holy'Ghost and with fire." Again, John 1:33."But he that sent
me to baptize with water, the same said unto me, Upon whom thou
shalt see the Spirit descending, and remaining on him, the same
is he which baptizeth with the Holy Ghost." From this we can
hear and understand, that water baptism does not give an
entrance into the kingdom of God, but only the baptism by the
Holy Ghost with which Christ baptizes.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, in this you lie, you Anabaptist, with
your accursed mouth, for Christ says, "Of water and of the
Spirit;" hence the baptism of the Holy Ghost does not alone
make the entrance into the kingdom of God, but the water and of
the Spirit, see.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  Then I must ask you, whether none were ever baptized by
God and by Christ in the Holy Ghost, without water?</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> What a devilish question this is; bah, who
is there that could answer to such an accursed question? Bah,
see once, with what this * * * bishop, Jacob the weaver, does
now come to vex and torment us. Bah, answer yourself.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  Well then, when Christ saw and heard, that Nicodemus
was so greatly astonished at the words which He spake to him,
and that Nicodemus could not understand His words, and asked,
how these things were possible, Christ answered him and
said, "Art thou a master of Israel, and knowest not these
things?" From these words of Christ we can understand, that
Christ did not speak of baptism, but that He spoke to him of
things that were comprehended in the law of the Israelites,
namely, the regeneration by the Holy Ghost, in which all the
holy fathers and elect of God, before the coming of Christ,
were regenerated or baptized. For if Christ had spoken of water
baptism, as you papists think, Nicodemus might have said to
Christ, "I have never read of a water baptism in the whole law."
But now Christ spoke to him of things that were written in the
law, or in the holy Scriptures of the Old Testament, though He
called them by another name, namely, a regeneration of the
water and of the Spirit, though the Holy Ghost is therein
called a water. But Christ thereby wanted to prove to
Nicodemus, in order to astonish him in regard to a matter which
he ought to have known and understood very well, since he was a
master of Israel. Behold, for this reason the regeneration in
which Christ baptized with the Holy Ghost is only signified by
the outward baptism of water.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, Jesus, Jesus, how well you can talk,
how well your tongue is hung 1 Bah, never in all my life did I
hear the Scriptures expounded so strangely, contrary to the
views of our mother, the holy Catholic Roman church, and the
ancient teachers and fathers. Bah, now I am not surprised, that
the Anabaptists have made you their teacher, preacher and
bishop; for to hear such sermons, the people of Bruges ran at
so tremendous a rate to the Gruthuysbosch. But I must ask you
one more question: When you Anabaptists have children that
remain simple or idiots, and they grow to be twenty, thirty,
forty, yea, eighty, or ninety years old, do you allow them to
die unbaptized, because they cannot comprehend your belief and
doctrine? for one that remains all his life simple, or an
idiot, can certainly not be taught. What do you do with them at
any rate? let us hear once, but briefly; for your long talk
begins to be very</p>

</div><div id="786"> 

<p>irksome to these good sirs, as well as to me, and it is
getting late, and I am tired, that I am.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  To such innocent, simple and <i>childish per</i>sons
belongs the kingdom of heaven, as Christ says, Matt. 19:14.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah! tush, tush, tush! I say that it is not
necessary to teach men first their confession of faith, before
they are baptized, as you Anabaptists teach and do, when you
baptize, or rebaptize; for though the infants are unlearned in
the Christian faith, we Catholics baptize them upon the faith
of the holy church, and because they have believing parents;
therefore they need not be taught first, that they need
not.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  Yet Christ says, in the sixteenth" chapter of Mark;"Go
ye into all the world, and preach the Gospel to every creature.
He that believeth and is baptized shall be saved." Here
certainly preaching and believing are mentioned before
baptizing. Again, Matt. 28, Christ says, "Go ye therefore, and
teach all nations, baptizing them," etc. Here certainly
teaching is mentioned before baptizing.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Tush, tush! you are beginning to preach
again, are you? Hence one more question, and then enough. In
good faith, if an unbaptized person of your Anabaptistic church
were instructed far enough in your devil's faith, to receive
baptism, and,he should come to be baptized, and should become
so sick and faint as to lose all self-consciousness, and could
therefore not confess his faith before or in baptism, would you
also suffer him to die unbaptized, I suppose you would? hence
your nonsense and twiddle-twaddle deserve no respect or
regard.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  Though he should die in that faintness, unbaptized, he
would be saved through his faith; for Christ (Mark 16:16)
says, "But he that believeth not shall be damned."</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Well, I have no desire tof dispute any
longer with you. I shall go my way, and let the executioner
dispute with you, with a burning fagot * * * and afterwards the
devil in hell, with burning pitch, brimstone and tar, see.</p>

<p><i>Jac.</i>  No; for Paul writes (II Cor. 5:1), "If our earthly house
of this tabernacle were dissolved, we have a building of God, a
house not made with hands, eternal in the heavens."</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah! in hell, in hell. Expect nothing else
than to go through this temporal fire into the eternal,; hell
yawns and gasps for your soul, you accursed, damned Anabaptist
that you are, see.</p><br />

<h1>DISPUTATION BETWEEN HERMAN VLECKWIJK, IMPRISONED BY THE LORDS OF THE COUNTRY VAN DEN VRYE IN BRUGES, AND FRIAR CORNELIS, IN THE PRESENCE OF MR. JAN VAN DAM, ON THE <i>10TH</i> OF MAY, A. D. <i>1569</i></h1>

<p><i>Fr. Corn. I</i> would say, Good-day, Herman; but I am
quite wrought up and angry yet from yesterday, at your accursed
hedge-preacher, or teacher, who has so wickedly seduced,
deceived, crazed, be deviled and bewitched you and your fellow
Anabaptists by his damnable, hellish, Anabaptistic heresies,
out there in the miserable Gruthuysbosch. Hence I must now come
here and try whether I can draw you away again from this
Anabaptism, and convert you to our Catholic Christian faith;
have you a mind for it, or not? Let us hear now.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> To judge from your speaking, I should think
that you are angry, and if you had not told me yourself, I
would have thought, that you wanted to frighten me. But why are
you so angry at that friendly, pleasant man, who I think did
not give you one hard word?</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> He nevertheless called me a papist once or
twice; but I do not care * * * for that; but I am very angry
that he would in no wise suffer himself to be converted from
his accursed Anabaptism and all other accursed heresies, in
regard to which I have spent so much labor in vain; and the
most vexatious of all is, that <i>though I</i> so well showed,
and convinced him of, his bad, evil, wicked, false, heretical
faith, as these good lords have well heard, it was all of no
avail; ill betide him.</p>

<p><i>Herm. I</i> think, that he nevertheless clearly showed
you with the holy Scriptures, that his faith is in Jesus
Christ, the Son of the living God; whereby then could you show
him, that his faith is bad, evil, wicked, false, and heretical,
as you say?</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Fie, alas! I already hear by this answer,
that I shall win no laurels in the way of converting you. But
in good faith, do you people think it enough, only to believe
in Jesus Christ? Ali, bah, all the devils of hell believe in
Jesus Christ; bah, see here now, what we are tormented with.
Bah, you ought to, and must also, on pain of the damnation of
your soul, believe in all the other articles of the Christian
faith, and the excellent, holy institutions of our mother the
holy Roman Church, which by our holy fathers, the popes, have
in all general holy councils, been ordained and decreed to be
believed and observed. But you Anabaptists neither believe nor
observe anything of them, except it be very plainly stated in
the holy Scriptures; for if there are any matters contained in
the Scriptures, that seem somewhat obscure to you, you will by
no means believe them; as, for instance, all that is contained
in the holy Scriptures concerning prayer for the refreshing and
deliverance of the souls in purgatory; nor all that is said in
them respecting the seven sacraments; nor all that they say
concerning priestly authority; nor all that is found in them
regarding the transubstantiation, or change, of the bread and
wine into the real flesh and blood of Jesus Christ, in the
Sacrament of the altar; nor all that they contain concerning
the perpetual virginity and purity of Mary, the blessed mother
of God. No, these and very many other holy articles you will
not believe; yea, what is still more abominable, the worthy
blessed mother of God, whom you ought and are in duty bound to
honor, serve, invoke, and entreat, that she would intercede for
you with her dear Son, her you Ana-</p>

</div><div id="787"> 

<p>baptists do not esteem better than your filthy, * ,* sinful
wives. And in like manner you despise <i>and</i> reject all the
holy saints and sainfesses whom <i>you</i> ought to honor, fast
to them, celebrate, invoke,.and entreat; that they would stand
as advocates or mediators between God and <i>you,</i> .and
intercede, for you; bah! is this not a fine thing? Bah,
<i>you</i> are silent: answer me, why you heretics bear such
enmity and hatred to the worthy, blessed mother of God, and to
211 God's saints'; let us hear now.</p>

<p><i>Heym.</i> That we should hate Mary the mother of Jesus
Christ, and the saints of God; this be far from us; but that we
do not invoke and entreat them that they should stand as
advocates or .mediators between God, and us, this is because
John, in the second chaptr of his first epistle .says, "If any
man sin, we. have an advocate with the Father, Jesus Christ the
righteous: and he is the propitiation for our sins: and not for
ours only, but also <i>for</i> the sins of the whole world," In
like manner, Paul writes to Timothy, in the second chapter of
his first epistle, "There is one God, and one mediator 'between
God and man, the roan Christ Jesus: who gave himself a ransom
for all." In the same manner he also writes to the 'Hebrews; in
the ninth chapter. But we do not hate our enemies; how then
should we hate God's saints, our, fellow brethren and sisters
in the Lord?</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Indeed? if they are your fellow brethren
and sisters in the Lord, why then do you bear such enmity and
hatred to them, that you help burn or destroy their relics or
bones; and break their images to pieces, wherever you have been
able to get at them? is this not a fine brotherhood and
sisterhood? accursed Anabaptists that -you are.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> We do not meddle with your affairs; if you
would leave us alone in our faith and in our walk and
conversation, as we leave you alone, in your religion, and with
your images, relics or dad men's bones, your hands would remain
unstained with and innocent of our blood.- But you generation
of Cain first killed the saints of God; and then take them to
exalt and honor them with fasting and celebrating, and erect
to,' them idolatrous images, which they themselves despised and
rejected, and you honor their bones, as Christ says, Luke
11:47, "Woe unto you! for ye build the sepulchres of the prophets:
and your fathers killed them." Truly ye bear witness that ye
allow the deeds of your fathers: for they indeed killed them,
and ye build, their. sepulchres. Therefore also saith the
wisdom' of God, I will send them prophets and apostles, and
some of them they shall slay and' persecute: that the blood of
all the prophets [which was shed from the foundation of the
world], may 'be 'required of this generation; from the blood of
Abel. Matt. 23.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Ah, bah! would you * * * 'accursed
Anabaptists compare yourself to the prophets, apostles, and to'
God's holy martyrs, popes and ~ iests, whose blood was shed for
the Catholic, Christian faith, of which you Anabaptists are now
such enemies, that you through the rejection of the sacrament
of the priesthood reject, not only the six othei sacraments,
and all our Christian ceremnies and acts of worship, but also
all the articles of' the Christian, Catholic faith, as I have
said;</p>

<p>therefore you are put to death; do you understand this, you
uncouth, blockheaded Anabaptist that you are?</p>

<p><i>Herm</i>. However uncouth and blockhead I am, I
understand very well that you put us to death because we do not
believe or observe these popish, or Romish, church articles,
part of which you have mentioned. And you think that you do God
service by killing us for it, as Christ says (John 16:2,
3), "They shall put you out of the synagogues: yea, the time
cometh, that whosoe~er killeth you will think that. he doeth
God service. And these things will they do unto you, because
they have not known the Father, nor me."</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah l you bewitched and devil-possessed
Anabaptists, would you also fain claim this for your side;
would you? Bah, and would you charge and upbraid us priests and
Catholics with such things, would you? Bah, and would you also
say., that we priests know neither God nor His Son Jesus
Christ, would you? Ah, bah! who knows God and Jesus Christ
better than we Catholic priests? Hence this is all spoken
concerning the Jewish priests, and concerning the Anabaptists;
Calvinists, Lutherans, and other heretics, who in France and
Spain in these lands and elsewhere, so tyrannically .persecute,
trouble, torment, and martyrize us priests, because we have the
true knowledge of God and Christ, see.</p>

<p><i>Herm:</i> It is to _ be feared that Christ will not know
you, though you think that you know Him so very well; for you
are of so many different orders and rules. You are a
Franciscan, the other an Augustinian, the other a Carmelite,
the other a Jacobine or Dominican, the other a Benedictine;
yea, innumerable are the orders and sects into which you are
divided, and each has its special ceremonies and rules,
according to which he must live, of which not a word is found
in the teaching of Christ; how then shall lie know you!</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Indeed? you hellish, devilish Anabaptist,
though we are so diverse in regard to orders, rules and
ceremonies, are we ecclesiastics not all comprehended in one
sacrament of priesthood, eh?</p>

<p><i>Herin.</i> Your sacrament of priesthood is nevertheless
an article like all the other articles of your faith, of which
nothing is found written in the holy Scriptures, hence I have
no knowledge of, nor faith in it.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Ah, you accursed Anabaptist, answer me
then, why God the Father should not be willing to know us, who
are His priests, for do we not daily, in the mass, offer up His
Son Jesus Christ, in flesh and blood? Bah, whom should they
both know better than us, their priests? What will you say now,
eh?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> How shall I here tell you the secret of the</p>

</div><div id="788"> 

<p>mass? I do not myself know it; but you know it very
well.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Indeed? if you do not know the secret of
the mass, how comes it then that you heretics undertake to
describe such an accursed"Death-bed of the mass?" in which it
says, that the mass, as it were, is lying sick of a putrid
ulcer, which she has in her canon, and of which she will have
to die. Bah! and do you accursed heretics then not know the
secret of the mass, as you call it? Bah! may the devil skin you
with the"Death-bed of the mass," accursed Anabaptists that you
are.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> We have not composed or written the book of
the"Death-bed of the mass," and do you take it so ill that I
speak of the secret of the mass? is it not a common saying,
also among the papists when they are asked in regard to
something which they do not wish to tell, they generally
answer, "I do not want to tell the secret of the mass."</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah! the devil and his mother have
introduced this saying among the laity. I would that all who
use it would sink together through the earth into the abyss of
hell, that I would.</p>

<p><i>Recorder.</i> O father Cornelis, the people say it
without thinking any evil by it; I have frequently heard
priests say it, and to confess the truth, I have often said it
myself, without any evil thought or reflection.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Well, it is enough of it; but, you
Anabaptist, answer me whether you believe, that the real flesh
and blood of Christ Jesus are offered up by us priests in the
mass, let us hear.</p>

<p><i>Herm. You</i> must ask me concerning things that are
contained in the holy Scriptures; for I have not studied your
faith or religion.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Indeed? You crazy, bedeviled Anabaptist,
and would you only be asked concerning things that are
expressly contained in the holy Scriptures? Come on then, now I
will soundly ask you in regard to things that are most clearly
contained in the holy Scriptures. Bah! I have heard it said,
that you have grown-up children running about at home, that are
still unbaptized, nevertheless Christ, in the third chapter of
John, says to Nicodemus, "Verily, verily, except every man be
born again of water and of the Spirit, he cannot enter into the
kingdom of God." Bah, is this not something that is contained
in the holy Scriptures, eh?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> When the apostles, according to the command of
Christ (Matt. 28), went and taught all nations to believe in
Jesus Christ before they baptize them, did the converts to the
faith, in the meantime, while they were being instructed, also
go about unbaptized at home?</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, and if your children should die in the
meantime, would they not go to the devil in hell, I
suppose?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> No, no more than the children or converts to
the faith in the time of the apostles.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Ali, Bah! that was another thing; those
children were circumcised, and thereby they were saved, though
they died unbaptized; bah, here you are in a corner, happen
what will, yes, yes, yes!</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> Those children were not all circumcised; for
the faith in Jesus Christ was preached and taught also among
the uncircumcised Gentiles; now I am out of the corner
again.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Indeed? I shall put you in the corner
again. Bah! as the children of the uncircumcised Gentiles, that
died without baptism, went to the devil, so your children that
die without baptism also go into eternal perdition; do you
understand this?</p>

<p><i>Herm..</i> Our children that die before baptism certainly
do not go into eternal perdition, any more than did the
children of the Old Testament, that died uncircumcised before
the eighth day.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Ah, bah! do you think that the children of
the Old Testament, that died uncircumcised before the eighth
day, are saved? bah, this were a fine thing.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> Yes, this we think, without once doubting it,
and I am surprised to hear you doubt it.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, what do you make of the original sin
then, which the children inherit from Adam and Eve, eh?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> What do you make of the death of Christ? for
John the Baptist said, "Behold, the Lamb of God, which beareth
away the sin of the world." John 1:29.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, Christ bears away all the sin of the
world, as you Anabaptists understand, think and believe. Bah,
who then shall be damned? no one, I suppose.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> Christ says in the sixteenth chapter of
Mark, "He that believeth not shall be damned;" but He nowhere
says, "He that is not baptized (understand, in infancy) shall be
damned."</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, here you lie with your vile, false,
lying mouth; for did I not tell you, that in the third chapter
of St. John it is written, that Christ said to Nicodemus, 
"Verily, verily, except every man be born again of water
and of the Spirit, he cannot enter into the kingdom of God?"
bah I here I have certainly cornered you, have I not, eh?</p>

<p><i>Herm. No;</i> for. Christ there speaks of no external
baptism, nor does He mention baptism; but He speaks of the
regeneration which is performed by the Spirit of God, who is
sometimes also called a water in the holy Scriptures. For thus
says the Lord by the prophet Isaiah in the forty-fourth chapter
(v. 3), "I will pour water upon him that is thirsty, and floods
upon the dry ground: I will pour my Spirit upon thy seed."
Again, by the prophet Ezekiel, in the thirty-sixth chapter
(verses 25, 26), "I will sprinkle clean water upon you, and ye
shall be clean: , from all your filthiness, and from x.11 your
idols, will I cleanse you. A new heart a so will I give you,
and a new Spirit will I put within you." Again, in the
thirty-ninth chapter (v. 29), the Lord says by Ezekiel, "I have
poured out my Spirit upon the house of Israel." Again, by the
prophet Joel, in the second chapter (v. 28):</p>

</div><div id="788">
<p>"Then will I pour out my Spirit upon all flesh," etc.</p> 

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Well, all this is done through the
sacrament of baptism, when the children are baptized; for then
the devil is exercised by the priest, and they are cleansed
from the original sin, inherited from Adam and Eve, and they
obtain a new heart and a new spirit; bah, thus does God pour or
shed His Spirit upon all flesh; you will not cheat me out of
this-you are cornered and remain cornered, see!</p>

<p><i>Herm. I</i> tell you again, that Christ, when He talked
with Nicodemus, meant such a regeneration as does not concern
external baptism, nor does it children; but it concerns the
true believers in Christ, who are begotten according to the
will of God, by the word of truth, as James says in the first
chapter. Again, Peter, in the first chapter of his first
epistle, says, "See that you love one another with a pure heart
fervently: being born again, not of corruptible seed, but of
incorruptible, by the word of God, which liveth and abideth
forever." Of similar Scriptures which do not concern little
children or external baptism, there are more yet.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, but if the regeneration of water and
of the Spirit does not concern children, they must certainly
and unmistakably go to the devil; for you acknowledge yourself,
that he who does not believe will be damned. Bah, children do
certainly not believe as you also say. And when they besides
remain unbaptized, and die thus, they must surely be damned;
for by what other way could they be saved, eh?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> By the death of Christ, as I have told you. And
Christ also says (Matt. 5:18, 19), that to such belongs the
kingdom of heaven.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn..</i> Yes, these are the same arguments with
which your hedge-preacher yesterday made my spleen run over.
Bah, what does all this disputing and arguing amount to; if you
would suffer yourself to be converted, you must be willing to
be taught, and brought to the Catholic, Christian faith of our
mother, the holy Roman church, and to her baptism and religion.
Bah, why will you trust so much in the heresies of that damned
arch-heretic, Menno Simons, and so firmly rely upon this
bewitched hedge-preacher? Bah, why do you not believe me as
well as that Menno Simons? for I am as learned, and have read
as much, and certainly much more, as this * * * bishop, Jacob
the weaver, and as a Dietrick Phillips, and an Ubbo Frisius,
and such devil's brood, I suppose, eh?</p>

<p><i>Herm. I</i> trust (or build) not upon Merino Simons, nor
upon any man; for the propkiet Jeremiah says in his seventeenth
chapter (v. 5), "Thus saith the Lord: Cursed, be the man that trusteth in
man."</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> This is very true; in this you say very
well, see; if you begin to talk like this, I feel quite
hopeful, that I will convert you with the help of God, from
this miserable Anabaptism. So I will first prevail upon you, to
renounce the same, and to have your unbaptized children
baptized in the Catholic church, by a priest, as a good
Christian is in duty bound to do, see. Well, Herman, what think
you of this, eh?</p>

<p><i>Herm. I</i> do not think that you are the man that will
convert me to your mother, the Roman church, or who will bring
me to it, that I shall have my unbaptized children baptized in
the papistic church.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Ali bah, how do you talk in this strain
again; a thousand devils (God bless us), what has come over
you? It seems, as though he would trust no longer in Menno
Simons, nor in any other man; but as soon as I begin with
kindness and friendliness to admonish him to renounce
Anabaptism, and to have his unbaptized children baptized in our
Catholic church, he instantly pipes another tune. Is this not a
fine thing? If you will not be converted, and have your
unbaptized children baptized in our church, after the Catholic
rite, you can be burned alive at the stake, see.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> This you papists could also do just as well,
even if I turned from my faith, and had my unbaptized children
baptized in your church.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Be sure, we could; but we would give you
the sword. If you will suffer yourself to be converted with
kindness. I insure you the sword, that I do.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> For what purpose should you give me a sword? it
would be of no use to me, for we use no swords.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Tush, tush, tush! you well understand what
I mean by it: you would only be beheaded with the sword,
see.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> After I should have truly and unfeignedly
confessed, that I had erred in the faith, and after I should
have my unbaptized -children baptized in your church, would I
then, according to your saying or meaning, not be a good,
upright Christian?</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Jesus, yes, Herman, and should you not in
every manner, yes, you, faithful Herman, be as good a Christian
as any one can be? This is what I like to hear, see.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> And would you papists make no sin of it, to
shed the blood of such a good, upright Christian?</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Fie, tusk, tush, tush, bah, is it noth. ing
else? You would have to die nevertheless, because of your
having apostatized from the Catholic Christian faith, and
having yourself rebaptized, see.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> The shepherd of the hundred sheep, of whom
Christ speaks in the fifteenth chapter of Luke, did
nevertheless not cut the throat of the lost or strayed sheep,
when He had found it; but He laid it upon His shoulders, and
carried it home rejoicing.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Ali, bah! what is the use of all this
raving and prating? if you want to be converted, be converted,
and recant; what shall I say of this? Bah, I should sooner
convert the devil in hell and his mother, than I could convert
one of these ob-</p>

</div><div id="790"> 

<p>durate, petrified Anabaptists; this I swear to you, that I
do.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> Therefore I said, that you are not the man who
shall be able to prove to me from the holy Scriptures, that my
faith, and my baptism, which I received upon confession of my
faith in Jesus Christ, is evil; how then should you be able to
convert me from it?</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Indeed? but what devil in hell makes you
people so presumptuous as that you have yourselves rebaptized,
who have once been baptized? Show me once from the holy
Scriptures, that a Christian that has once been baptized is to
have himself rebaptized. Bah, I stake my neck, that you will
not be able to show this to me with the holy Scriptures,
see.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> Alas! poor Friar Cornelis, you have already
lost your neck; for in the nineteenth chapter of the Acts of
the Apostles it is written, "And it came to pass, that, while
Apollos was at Corinth, Paul having passed through the upper
coasts came to Ephesus; and finding certain disciples, he said
unto them, Have ye received the Holy Ghost since ye believed?
And they said unto him, We have not so much as heard whether
there be any Holy Ghost. And he said unto them, Unto what then
were ye baptized? And they said, Unto John's baptism. Then said
Paul, John verily baptized with the baptism of repentance,
saying unto the people, that they should believe on him which
should come after him, that is, on Christ Jesus. When they
heard this, they were baptized in the name of the Lord Jesus."
Now, poor Friar Cornelis, here you lose your neck.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Enough, ah, bah, if they had been rightly
baptized. Paul would not have caused them to be rebaptized. No,
I have not yet lost my neck, that I have not.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> Well then, I answer the same; if I had been
rightly baptized, I would also not have had myself rebaptized.
But now you can well hear, that you have unjustly so often
called me an accursed Anabaptist.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> But you were certainly very well baptized;
for the priest had baptized you in the name of the Father, the
Son, and the Holy Ghost. And afterwards, only six or seven
years ago, you had yourself baptized again; are you therefore
not an accursed, damned Anabaptist, eh?</p>

<p><i>Herm. I</i> was not baptized upon my faith in Jesus
Christ, but in my unbelief; and when I heard and understood
this, I had myself baptized upon my faith, as Christ Himself
has said in the sixteenth chapter of Mark, "He that believeth
and is baptized shall be saved." Am I therefore an accursed,
damned Anabaptist?</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Yes, you are and remain a damned, accursed
Anabaptist, if you do not become converted. For St. Paul says,
that there is but one God, one faith, and one baptism; is it
not Anabaptism then, to have one's self rebaptized?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> For this reason you papists are justly
(according to your saying) called Anabaptists by the
Calvinists, because you have rebaptized in your churches their
children, that had been baptized once out here in their
preaching.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn. O</i> you awkward, block-headed Anabaptist,
those children were not rightly baptized, and you know yourself
well enough how to prove from the nineteenth chapter of the
Acts of the Apostles, that St. Paul caused those who had not
been rightly baptized under John's baptism to be rebaptized.
Bah, are we Catholics Anabaptists? I suppose so, * * * What
shall I say now, does it now become fool's work altogether with
the sacrament of baptism-see wherewith we are now tormented and
vexed; would you accursed Anabaptist now begin to call us
Catholics Anabaptists? Bah!</p>

<p><i>Herm. I</i> do not call you Anabaptists; for I only say,
that the Calvinists call you Anabaptists, because you rebaptize
their children, which they had once baptized.</p>

<p class="c3"
   align="left">Fr. Corn.* * * (He spoke here only vile words
   of abuse.)</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> Our baptism is nevertheless administered
according to the institution of Christ; for in our church the
believing are baptized, but you baptize the unbelieving.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, the sponsors believe in behalf of the
children, until they are old enough to believe themselves, do
you understand this?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> No; I find nothing said in the Scriptures,
about sponsors, nor about one man believing in behalf of
another.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, now you are clearly cornered; for does
not St. Luke say in the fifth chapter, that Christ saw the
faith of the bearers who let down the man afflicted with the
palsy, through the roof with his couch, and that He therefore
healed him and forgave his sins, eh? Bah, here for once I have
clearly cornered you; get out if you can. Now you have
spectacles on your nose, have you not, eh?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> No; for from this it is not to be understood,
that the man afflicted with the palsy did not himself believe,
or was without faith, as are the children which you
baptize.</p>

<p>Fr. Corn. Bah, the old fathers or teachers of our mother,
the holy Roman Catholic church do nevertheless understand, that
the bearers of the man afflicted with the palsy signify the
sponsors, who hold the children when they are being baptized,
and believe in behalf of the children, till these are old
enough. to believe for themselves; for to this end the
sacrament of confirmation is instituted, to put the children,
when they are old enough to believe themselves, in remembrance
that they were baptized. Bah, I could very well show you this
from the ancient fathers, but you Anabaptists will rely most
firmly on the holy Scriptures alone, so that you will not once
hearken to the ancient fathers or teachers of the holy church.
Bah, it seems, as the provincial of the Augustinians tells me,
that, when</p>

</div><div id="791"> 

<p>one begins to mention something to you from St. Jerome, St.
Ambrose, St. Augustine, St. Gregory, or some other ancient
fathers, that you people carry on in just such a crazy and ugly
manner, as though one began to speak to you of the very devil
-is this not a fine thing?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> Because we wish to be only Christians,
therefore we do not want to hearken to the teachings of the
ancient fathers; for they describe popery, as of sponsors, of
the sacrament of confirmation, and the whole popery which you
follow and observe:</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn. O you</i> damned, accursed Anabaptist, do you
call the sacrament of confirmation popery?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> What else is it then? for I have never read in
the holy Scriptures of the sacrament of confirmation.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, and are so dull, awkward and
block-headed, that you do not understand it, though you read of
it; for confirmation means the imposition of hands, see.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> Ah, does it mean this? pardon me, that through
my awkwardness and dullness I do not understand such very high
and fine Latin.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Ah, bah, did I say it is Latin, see
here.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> What language is it then? I certainly would
like to know.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, that I do not know myself; but we
Catholics understand it by the word confirmation, the sacrament
of confirmation, or the laying on of the hands of the bishop,
when our bishops and suffragans confirm grown-up children or
adults, as also the apostles did; hence it is that I say, that
you sectarians read of many holy sacramental things in the
Scriptures, which you do not understand, and therefore you do
not know our sacrament of confirmation, that you do not.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> If your bishops or suffragans by such
confirmation and laying on of hands could give to the grown-up
children and adults the Holy Ghost, and that they spake with
tongues, and prophesied as did the apostles, and also those
upon whom they laid their hands, then I should very well
understand and know your confirmation.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, there had to be miracles then, when
the people did not believe yet, in order that they might
believe the apostles; do you understand this, you stupid
Anabaptist?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> If Christ had commanded you to imitate such
laying on of hands, He would also do those miracles though you.
Hence, when your bishops do such miracles with their
confirmation and imposition of hands, then I shall believe you
too.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Tush, tush, tush, these are the same
arguments and chatterings which also your accursed
hedge-preacher advanced yesterday against the sacrament of
confirmation, and the sacrament of extreme unction. Bah, though
Christ Himself did not command us to imitate it, the apostles
commanded us to do it; for does not St. James, in the fifth
chapter, command that when any one is sick, he priests of the
church are to be sent for, to pray over him, and to anoint him
with oil, eh?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> The oil of which James writes must have been
another oil than your oil; for with that the sick were
anointed, that they should recover from their sickness, and
they did recover from it. But you priests do the very opposite;
for if you knew beforehand, that the sick should recover, and
not die, you would not anoint them with oil; for you anoint no
sick persons with oil except those who you think will die.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, my lords, did I not well know, that it
would be the same thing which it was yesterday with their
hedge-preacher? Bah, I lay you a wager, that if I begin to
prove to him, from the same fifth chapter of St. James, the
sacrament of confession, he will also say, as his
hedge-preacher said yesterday, that I also ought to confess my
sins to him; just see, with what we are tormented and
vexed.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> Did this seem to you so strange an answer from
him? for it is nevertheless written, "Confess your sins one to another.." But when you priests
learn from people all that you wish to know, then you let them
go, and do not yourselves confess to them who have confessed
(as you call it) their sins to you.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Yes, we call it confession, and it is
confession, and shall remain confession, in spite of your
teeth. Ah, bah, would it not be a fine thing, if we priests
also had to kneel down and confess ourselves to the laity; and
would they have the power to absolve us from sin? I suppose so.
Bah, what a fine absolution that would be! Bah, and if I here
confess myself to you, would you be so presumptuous as to think
that you have power to loose or forgive my sins, eh?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> Such power as you or all priests have to
forgive sin, all men have; for Christ says, Mark
11:25, "Forgive, if ye have aught against any</p>

<p>that your Father also which is in heaven may forgive you
your trespasses." Again, Luke 6:37, "Forgive, and ye shall be
forgiven."</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn. O</i> you accursed Anabaptist, have you laymen
priestly authority to forgive sin in confession? .Bah, the
forgiveness of sin of which Christ speaks, Mark 11; Luke 6,
does not concern confession or absolution. * * * Bah, we
priests have in the sacrament of confession and absolution a
special priestly authority to forgive and to retain sin, that
we do.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> Whence do you priests get a special authority
to forgive sin, more than we, whom you call laymen?</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, this special authority which Christ
delivered to His vicar, St. Peter, and St. Peter left it to his
vicars the popes, and the popes impart to us of that power,
because they cannot themselves in person everywhere hear
confession, and absolve, see.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> That the popes and you priests have the special
power to forgive and to retain sin, which</p>

</div><div id="792"> 

<p>Christ gave to Peter, this you will not be able to show to
me with the holy Scriptures.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Indeed? O you accursed Anabaptist, the
executioner will be able very well to show it to you, by
kindling a good fire * * * and the very devils in hell will
also show it to you with burning pitch, brimstone, and tar .in
the fire of hell; this I swear to you, that I do.</p>

<p><i>Herm. You</i> papists can demonstrate your faith,
doctrine and religion with nothing better than with the
executioner, and with sword, fire, rope and gallows; for these
are the best demonstrations or proofs which you have, and thus
your forefathers demonstrated their faith and doctrine to God's
prophets, to Christ, to His apostles, and to the saints of God,
from the blood of Abel until now.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Ha, you hellish, devilish, damned, accursed
Anabaptists, for what do you take our holy fathers the popes
and us priests? may thunder and lightning kill, burn and
pulverize you. Bah, that I should thus excite, exasperate and
disquiet myself for such an accursed Anabaptist.</p>

<p><i>Clerk of the criminal court.</i> Tush, tush, Father
Cornelis, and Herman, speak gently with each other.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Yes indeed, be gentle towards such
bedeviled, bewitched, heretics, who do not believe anything. In
good faith, do you Anabaptists then go thus unconfessed and
unabsolved to your supper? I suppose so; for,you regard it but
as a bit of simple common bread, and a little draught of com,
mon, flat wine. The transubstantiation in the sacrament of the
altar with you is only popery, .yea, sorcery, and we priests
are regarded as sorcerers by you, because we adjure and conjure
the true flesh and blood of Christ in the host and in the cup,
as you Sacramentarians say, ill betide you.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> Such confession, or absolution, or sacrament of
the altar we do not use in our church, but we observe such
forgiveness of sins, as Christ commands us, Mark 11; and Luke
6, and such breaking of bread, and distribution of the cup, as
He in His last supper commands us to do for His
remembrance.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, but with that forgiveness of sins
Christ means this when your neighbor has done aught amiss to
you; but I ask concerning the sins which you people have sinned
against God whether you go with these unconfessed and
unabsolved to your devil's supper, eh?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> We pray as Christ has taught us, Matthew
6:12."Forgive us our debts, as we forgive our debtors." And we
use no devil's supper.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Your breaking of bread, and distribution of
the cup is the devil's supper of which Paul writes in the tenth
chapter of his first epistle to the Corinthians, "Ye cannot
drink the cup of the Lord, and the cup of devils; ye cannot be
partakers of the Lord's table, and of the table of devils: But
the cup of blessing which we bless," that is, we Catholics,"is
it not the communion of the blood of Christ? The bread which we
break, is it not the communion.of the body of Christ?" Bah, and
is your bit of bread, and your cup with a little draught of
flat wine not a devil's supper? for you sacramentarians do not
bless your cup, nor do you consecrate your bit of bread, but it
is wine and bread, and remains wine and bread; bah, let us hear
what you can answer against this, that will be conclusive.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> In regard to this, I must ask you, whether you
yourself believe, that Christ in His last supper meant no other
body or flesh, and no other blood, than that which was to be
broken and shed on the cross for the remission of sins.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Ah, bah; and should I not believe this?
this is quite Catholic, that it is.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> Well you will certainly also confess, I think,
that the bread which the apostles le at the supper was not
crucified.</p>

<p><i>Fr: Corn.</i> Bah, what hellish, devilish, heretical
question is this; never in all the days of my life did I hear
such a deep question. Bah, I believe and know very well, that
the apostles ate the same body or flesh of Jesus Christ, which
the day after the supper was to be crucified, see.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> Therefore, poor man, you do not understand the
sense or meaning of Christ, though Paul in the tenth chapter of
the first epistle to the Corinthians very clearly explains the
same, saying, "Behold Israel after the flesh; are not they which eat of
the sacrifice partakers of the altar?" Thus also are we in the
eating of the bread, and in the drinking .of the wine,
partakers of the body and blood of Christ.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn:</i> Bah, you accursed Sacramentarian, would you
compare the flesh of God to the rotten flesh of oxen, and the
lousy flesh of sheep, and to the, rotten, putrid flesh of goats
and other beasts and carrions? * * * Bah, fie, what abominable
and horrible heresy is this?</p>

<p><i>Herm. You</i> understand neither Paul nor me; for what I
say is this, that Paul by this comparison of the sacrifices of
the altar (which the Jews ate, and thereby became partakers of
the sacrifice in the remission of sins) explains and expounds
the communion or participation of the broken bread and of the
cup of wine (which we eat and drink in remembrance of the body
and blood of Christ), that we thus also become partakers in the
washing from sins through the body and blood of Christ, which
He offered up for the sins of the world.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Ah, bah, see, now I plainly understand your
heretical, Sacramentarian meaning, that you only make
comparisons and memorials of the flesh and blood of Christ. Eh,
accursed Anabaptist, why then does St. Paul say, in the
eleventh chapter of his first epistle to the
Corinthians, "Wherefore whosoever shall eat this bread, and
drink this cup of the Lord, unworthily, shall be guilty of the
body and blood of the Lord. But let a man examine himself, and
so let him eat of that bread and drink of that cup. For he that
eateth and drinketh unworthily, eateth and drinketh
judgment</p>

</div><div id="793"> 

<p>to himself, not discerning the Lord's body." Bah, answer me
once to this, you accursed Sacramentarian, that you are.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> In the tenth chapter of the first epistle to
the Corinthians Paul writes, "We being many are one bread, and
one body: for we are all partakers of that one bread." Again in
the twelfth chapter, "We are all members of one body." If we then are members of
one body, unto which Christ has united us together by His
baptism and by His Spirit, no external sign can be fitter, to
show or signify the union of one body, than that in the
breaking of bread we all become partakers of one bread, in
token that we being many are one bread and body. Likewise it is
also with the wine; for as many grains are ground together, and
made into one bread, so of many grapes one drink is made.
Therefore let every one examine himself, whether he be worthy
of the communion of the bread and of the cup of the Lord, and
whether he love his fellow brother with a pure heart: for if he
hates his brother, and does not love him, and would besides
make himself a partaker yet of the bread and of the cup of the
Lord as though he were a member of Christ, he shall be guilty
of the body and blood of the Lord, and shall eat judgment to
himself, not discerning, that the body of the Lord is signified
by this communion or participation, that we are members of one
body, into which Christ has united us.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Tush, tush, tush I it seems that you also
could preach a little sermon in the Gruthuysbosch. Bah, this
people know nothing else to do but to preach; but you would
have to preach a long time to me, before I would believe that a
man will eat and drink judgment to himself on a bit of common
bread, and a little draught of wine, by which you
Sacramentarians would only signify the body and blood of
Christ. Bah, I would rather believe that God's name is Henry,
that I would.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> What greater importance was there in the
sacrifices of the Jews, of sheep and doves, than in the bread
and wine, which are all types of the true sacrifice which
Christ made on the cross in His own flesh and blood? And if the
Jews had nevertheless, according to the command of Christ, to
lay down their offering before the altar, and first go and
become reconciled to their brother, before they were to offer,
then a Christian also ought first to examine himself, before he
partakes of the bread and .the cup of the Lord.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, a thousand devils, God bless us, if
the bread and the wine are only types of the true sacrifice of
the flesh and blood of Christ on the cross why then does He say
in the sixth chapter of John, "The bread that I will give is my
flesh;" again, "My flesh is meat indeed, and my blood is drink
indeed; therefore he that eateth my flesh, and drinketh my
blood, shall live forever," eh?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> This argument is against yourself, for you
would say that the bread is therefore the body of Christ, and
the wine His blood, because Paul says, that whosoever eats and
drinks it unworthily eats and drinks judgment to himself. And
here Christ says, "He that eateth my flesh, and drinketh my
blood, shall live forever." If therefore that bread and wine of
which Paul writes, were the flesh and blood of Christ, no one
could therein eat judgment to himself.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, this accursed Sacramentarian would
torment and pester us here, I suppose, with all these
abominable blasphemies against God's true body and blood. Bah,
the very devil of hell sits in his accursed mouth.</p>

<p><i>Herm. I</i> have not mentioned one word about the body
and blood of God; how then can I have blasphemed there
against?</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn. O</i> you accursed Anabaptist and
Sacramentarian, are the body and blood of Christ not also the
body and blood of God? are God the Father and the Son of God
not one God, or would you make two Gods of them. Bah, are you
also a Trinitarian, I suppose, eh?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> Yet you said, when you wanted to dispute about
the mass, that you priests daily in the</p>

<p>mass, offer up to God His Son Jesus Christ; hence you make a
distinction between God and the body of His Son, <i>which
you</i> now begin to call the flesh and body of God.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, the devil and 'his mother wag your
tongue. You would now like to bite into my trap, would you?
Ali, you wicked, vile, false, crafty Anabaptist and
Sacramentarian, yea, also Trinitarian, because you speak so
abominably of the holy Trinity, do you then not believe, that
Christ is the second person in the Godhead of the holy Trinity?
Bah, it seems not from your speaking.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> We only know to speak of things that are
mentioned in the holy Scriptures.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn. O</i> you Trinitarian, do we not read in the
holy Scriptures of God the Father, and of God the Son, and of
God the Holy Ghost, eh?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> Yet the holy Scriptures speak of only one God,
and of the Son of the living God, and of the Holy Ghost.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Indeed? you accursed Trinitarian; if you
would read the symbol* of Athanasius, you would read of God the
Father, and of God the Son, and of God the Holy Ghost, which
three persons are therein called one true God, of whom the
Father is the first person in the Godhead; the Son is the
second person in the Godhead, and the Holy Ghost is the third
person in the Godhead; and these three persons constitute the
holy Trinity, that they do. Do you understand now, you
Trinitarian, eh?</p>

<p><i>Herm. I</i> have not studied the symbol of Athanasius;
for it is enough for me, that I believe in the living God, and
that Christ is the Son of the living God, as Peter believed
(Matt. 16), and in the Holy Ghost, which is shed on us
abundantly through</p>

<p class="c8">* Creed.</p>

</div><div id="794"> 

<p>Jesus Christ our Saviour, as Paul writes in the third
chapter of his epistle to Titus.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Indeed? you are certainly fine fellows,
that God should shed His Holy Spirit upon you who will not
believe that the Holy Ghost is also God Himself. But this
heresy you pick up and study in the devilish books of that
accursed Erasmus of Rotterdam, who in his preface to the books
of St. Hilary writes, that St. Hilary, at the end of his
twelfth book, says, that the Holy Ghost is nowhere in the holy
Scriptures called God, but that we have become so presumptuous
as to dare call the Holy Ghost God, which the ancient teachers
of the church did not dare do. In like manner this wicked
Erasmus is also a great enemy of the divinity of Christ. Ah,
bah I would you follow this damned Trinitarian, eh?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> We follow neither Erasmus nor Hilary, but we
follow the holy Scriptures, as Hilary and Erasmus herein
do.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Though the holy Scriptures nowhere call the
Holy Spirit God, what matters it? The Holy Ghost Himself has
inspired our mother the holy Roman Catholic church, to call Him
God, as appears from the symbol of Athanasius, see. But in good
faith, if you believe the holy Scriptures, why then will you
not believe in the divinity of Christ, eh?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> That be far from us, that we should not believe
in the divinity of Christ, that He is divine and heavenly, and
not earthly, as you people believe; therefore we are put to
death by you.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> * * * Bah, we put you to death, because you
people will not believe, that Christ assumed the seed of Mary
His blessed mother, see.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> We believe that the Word became flesh, as John
writes in the first chapter of his Gospel.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, now I have got you well cornered; for
God was the Word. And if God became flesh, why then would you
bite into my trap, because I say, God's flesh, God's body, and
God's blood, eh?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> We too believe that God was the Word; but would
you then therefrom understand, that the living God (of whom
Christ is the Son) became Himself flesh? this were certainly
contrary to the entire holy Scriptures.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Yet Christ says, John 10:30, "1 and my
Father are one." Again, John 14:9, "He that bath seen me bath
seen the Father." Bah, where are you now, eh?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> Christ also says (John 17:21-23), "That they all
may be one; as thou, Father, art in me, and I in thee, that
they also may be one in us: that the world may believe that
thou hast sent me. And the glory which thou gavest me I have
given them; that they may be one, even as we are one: I in
them, and thou in me, that they may be made perfect in one."
Again (Acts 4:32), "The multitude of them that believed were of
one heart and of one soul." Again, Paul to the Galatians (3:8)
says, "For ye are all one in Christ Jesus." Again (Ephe sians
5:31, 32), "For this cause shall a man leave his father and
mother, and shall be joined unto his wife, and they two shall
be one flesh. This is a great mystery."</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Tush, tush, you have preached enough; for
all this you have drawn from the venomous breasts of Erasmus.
But answer me, why Christ says, "He that bath seen me bath seen
the Father," see.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> Christ also says, John 6:46, "Not that any man
bath seen the Father, save he which is of the Father, he bath
seen the Father." Again, John 1:18, "No man bath seen God at any
time." Again, John 14:28, "For my Father is greater than I."
Again, Mark 13:32, "But of that day and that hour knoweth no
man, no, not the angels which are in heaven, neither the Son,
but the Father." From this it is sufficiently shown that the
Father Himself did not become flesh.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, this you need not teach me; for I say
myself that Christ, the second person in the Godhead, or of the
holy Trinity, became man, whom you will not call God; do you
understand this, you accursed Trinitarian that you are?</p>

<p><i>Herm. I</i> call Him the Son of the living God, as Peter
called Him. (Matt. 16:16), and Lord, as the apostles call
Him.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn. O</i> you accursed Trinitarian, I could jump
out of my skin for anger, that I could.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> Then you must jump out of your skin, when in
the second chapter of the Acts of the apostles (verse 22), you
read that Peter calls Him but a man of God, saying, "Jesus of
Nazareth, a man* approved of God among you by miracles and
wonders and signs, which God did by him." Again, in the same
chapter (verse 32), "This Jesus bath God raised up." Again, in
the third chapter (verse 15)"Whom God bath raised from the
dead." Again in Acts 4:10, "Jesus Christ of Nazareth, whom ye
crucified, whom God raised from the dead." Again, Paul (Acts
17:31) says, "Because he bath appointed a day, in the which he
will judge the world in righteousness by that man whom he bath
ordained; whereof he hath given assurance unto all men, in that
he bath raised him from the dead."</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Yes, yes, tush, tush, tush, bah I these are
the same arguments which this damned Erasmus prefers, in his
book, <i>de modo orandi,</i> and in <i>Apologia ad Episcopum
Hispalensem, Alphonsum Mauracum.</i> But you Trinitarian, if
you will call Christ only the Son of God, you do not esteem Him
better than Adam; for Luke says in his third chapter, that Adam
also was the son of God. Bah! see once, with what we are
tormented.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> That be far from us, that we should not esteem
Christ better than Adam; for because we believe, that the body
of Christ is not earthy of the earth, as was Adam the first
man, but that He is a heavenly man, as Paul writes in the
fifteenth chapter of his first epistle to the Corinthians;
therefore</p>

<p class="c8">* See German version.</p>

</div><div id="795"> 

<p>we are put to death by you; hence you yourselves do not
esteem Him better than Adarii.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> O you accursed Trinitarian, how the devil
does wag your tongue. Bah, if you, will not. believe, that
Christ is truly man; and if you will also not believe that He
is the true God, what * * * is He then?</p>

<p><i>Herm. Do</i> not talk so unbecomingly; for 'Christ is no
devil; but He is the true Son of God, 'as John writes in the
fifth chapter of his first epistle; and He is also a true man;
as Paul writes in the fifth chapter of his epistle to the
Romans.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, but does not St. John in the same
chapter say of the Son, "This is the true, God;" eh?</p>

<p><i>Herm. No,</i> for John says, "We know that .the Son of God
is come, and hath given us an under standing, that we may know
the true God, and that we should be in his true Son. 'This is
the true God, and eternal life." Hereby John means this true
God whom the Son taught us to know:</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, you Trinitarian; now it occurs to me
that St. John says in the same chapter, "There are three that
bear record in heaven, the Father, the Word, and the Holy
Ghost; and these three are one." Bah, here you are, soundly
cornered, poor Trinitarian that you are.</p>

<p><i>Herm. I</i> have often heard it said; that Erasmus in his
Annotations charges you papists with having interpolated these
words, and that they are not contained in the Greek text, even
as you people have taken out and added many other things' in
the holy Scriptures.</p>

<p><i>Fr.</i> Corn. Bah, may the fire of hell forever burn and
torment you with your devilish, damned, accursed heretic
Erasmus. Bah, I 'could tear my cap for anger; that I could:</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> Why then do you not tear, your cap, when you
read that Greek text yourslf; and' see that this is not
contained in it?</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, my lords, what do you think of this-am
I wrong in so sharply attacking in my sermons this damned
heretic, , this wicked Trinitarian Erasmus? For it is true,
this he writes; yea, what is still worse, in his Annotations to
the fourth chapter of St. Luke he has written.; that a very
great and strange corruption has been wrought:in the holy
Scriptures in the Greek and Latin copies, that sometimes
something is added and interpolated and sometimes something
taken away, omitted, and erased, on account of the heretics;
yea, that the marginal notes which were now and then written by
one or the other have all been foisted into the text, my lords,
is it not a fine thing?</p>

<p><i>Recorder.</i> Ali, Father Cornelis, we are no
theologians; we do not understand these things.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Indeed? Bah, I believe it; but this
Trinitarian would certainly understand it very well, as you
hear, that he charges us with it. Bah, he would dare charge us
Catholics with his archheretic, this wicked Erasmus, that in
the ,ninth chapter of Romans, where Paul says, "Whose are he
fathers, and of whom as concerning the flesh Christ came;" we'
have interpolated, "Who is over all, God blessed forever: Amen."
For this accursed .Erasmus writes, that he has great doubts
with regard to this clause, "Oui <i>est benedictus</i> in
<i>saecula. Amen."</i> Or these words are to be interpretedand
understood- as a thanksgiving to God the Father; thus,"Christ,
etc., who is over ail. God be blessed for ever.
Amen.""Otherwise," he writes;"I have great doubts; whether this
clause has not been interpolated, as I find also in some other
texts, that they have added similar clauses, for .the
conclusion of discourses, as, Tu <i>autem Domine; etc.; Gloria
Patri et Filio, etc.,</i> as their lessons and prayers are all
concluded with such clauses." But as regards the words of St.
Thomas, in the twentieth chapter of St. John's gospel, you have
no way of escape; for there St. Thomas said to Christ, "My Lord
and my God." Bah, to this he does not reply, yea, with this he
is soundly cornered- nevertheless, he spitefully writes with
regard to this, "This is the first and last passage in the
Scriptures, where Christ is called God." Bah, but you
Trinitarian, let us hear what you can say to this.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> I reply to this, that Thomas said very well
here; for David says in the eighty-second Psalm, "I have said,
Ye are gods'; and all of you are children. of the Most High."
Christ Himself also quotes these words in the tenth chapter of
John. When the Jews took up stones to stone Him, because He had
said,"I and the Fattier are one," esus answered them, "Many good
works have I shewed you from my Father; for which of those
works do you stone me?' The Jews answered him, saying: For a
good work we stone thee not; but for'blaspherny; and because
that thou, being a man, iiiakest thyself God. Jesus answered
them, Is it not written in your law, I said, Ye are gods. If he
called.them gods, unto whom the word of God came, and the
Scripture cannot be broken; say ye of him, whom the Father hath
sanctified, and sent into the world, thou blasphemest;. because
I said, I am the son of God?" Again, Ex. 22:8, 9, "If the thief,
be not found, then the master of the house shall be brought
unto the gods, etc. The cause of both parties shall come before
the gods; and whom the gods. shall condemn, he shall pay double
unto his neighbor."</p>

<p>Fr. Corn. Bah, but tell me without many words, why Christ
did not say to St. Thomas, "Stay: I am not your God?" let us
hear.</p>

<p>Herm. In regard to this my previous answer, John 10; David
in Ps. 82 will serve; but answer</p>

<p>Te why Christ did not reply to these words of homas, " Vpon
this rock I will build my church," as He .said, .1Vlatt. 16:18,
when Peter answered Him, "Thou art the Christ, the Son of the
living God?" He also did not say to Thomas, "Flesh and blood
hath not revealed it unto thee, but my Father which i's in
heaven." Why also does Christ, John 20:17; say to His
disciples, "I ascend unto my Fa-</p>

</div><div id="796"> 

<p>ther and your Father; and to my God, and your God? Again,
Matt. 27:46, "My God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me?"</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Tush, tush, you Trinitarian. Bah, from this
would probably follow diabolical arguments which would
transcend all human comprehension. Ah, bah, is Christ not truly
God? why then do we call His blessed mother the mother of God,
eh?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> Because you will nowhere follow the holy
Scriptures, but would call everything by a contrary and
different name; for the holy Scriptures call her the mother of
Jesus, as in the first chapter of the Acts of the Apostles, in
the nineteenth chapter of John, and in many other places of
holy Scripture, where she is not once called the mother of
God.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Indeed? Bah, do you think that we Catholics
pay so much regard to the naked, bare, meagre Scriptures? Ah,
bah, the worthy, holy council of Nice has ordained and decreed
that she should be called the mother of God. What do you say to
this?</p>

<p><i>Herm. Do you</i> not hold the last council of Trent to be
of as great authenticity, dignity, and holiness as the council
of Nice?</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Yea, in troth, and should we not? Ah, bah,
the Holy Ghost taught and spoke just as well through the
fathers in the worthy council of Trent, as though the fathers
in the council of Nice. Bah, what need is there of asking this
question? have you nothing else to ask me? Bah, I well perceive
that you would fain drop the subject concerning the mother of
God.</p>

<p><i>Herm. I</i> had to ask this in order to hear your
confession in regard to it; for now I know by the council of
Trent all the other councils, because I have in my time heard
and seen how things went at the former council, which mocks and
puts to shame all previous councils.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn. O</i> you hellish, devilish, accursed
Trinitarian, you blaspheme the Holy Ghost. It is a wonder that
we do not all together with you sink into the earth. My lords,
I am absolutely afraid to speak any longer with this
Beelzebubian Anabaptist, Sacramentarian and Trinitarian, and
enemy of the mother of God, that I am.</p>

<p><i>Recorder.</i> Can you not keep still in regard to these
things, Herman, as we requested of you?</p>

<p><i>Herm. I</i> do not blaspheme the Holy Ghost, nor am I an
enemy of the mother of Christ.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, do you not blaspheme the Holy Ghost,
when you ridicule, villify and deride the worthy council of
Trent, and all the previous holy councils? and will not call
the worthy, holy, blessed virgin Mary the mother of God, as the
holy council of Nice teaches and commands us to do? Bah, are
you not then a blasphemer of the Holy Ghost, and an enemy of
the mother of God eh?</p>

<p><i>Herm. You</i> papfists were so presumptuous in your
council of Nice, that you dared call the mother of Jesus Christ
the mother of God, whom neither the apostles nor the
evangelists dared call the mother of the Son of God.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn. O</i> you damned, devilish Anabaptist. you
hellish Trinitarian, Sacramentarian and deadly enemy of the
blessed mother of God, we will call her the mother of God in
spite of your teeth, and she is too the mother of God. Yea, she
is the mother of God, that she is?</p>

<p><i>Herm. You</i> said yourself that there are three persons
in the holy Trinity, the Father, Son, and the Holy Ghost, and
that these three persons are but one true God. If Mary then is
the mother of this true God, then she is just as well the
mother of the Father and of the Holy Ghost, and of the Son.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn. O</i> you devilish heretic, I have proved to
you from the symbol of Athanasius, that the Father is God, and
that the Son is God, and that the Holy Ghost is God, and that
there are nevertheless not three gods, but that these three are
one true, inseparable God, see.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> If these three are not each a distinct,
separate God, but if the three are but one true inseparable
God, and if Mary is the mother'of God, then she must be the
mother of all three, or the three must each be a separate God.
Where are you now with your council of Nice?</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, may the fire of hell burn you, you
wicked, evil, vile, false, crafty Trinitarian; the devil wags
your accursed tongue. Bah, you would drive an hundred thousand
doctors of divinity mad and crazy. Jesus, Jesus, worthy mother
of God, how you are reviled, despised and rejected by this
hellish devil's brood. But in good faith, how would you have
her called-Maeyken Timmermans,* as you call her in your
hellish, devilish sermons in the Gruthuysbosch, eh?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> We call her the mother of Jesus, as she is
called in the Scriptures, And how can you say that we revile,
despise and reject her?</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn. O</i> you accursed Anabaptist, I will drop
this, that you will not call her the mother of God; but is this
not odious reviling, despising and rejecting, that your
arch-heretic, Menno Simons writes, that Christ did not assume
the sinful earthly seed of Mary, but that He came with flesh
and blood, with skin and hair, from heaven, into Mary, and thus
became man, and that He merely passed through her body, as
water through a sieve, or through a spout; bah, is this not
reviling, blaspheming, despising and rejecting?</p>

<p><i>Herm. You</i> do not understand what Menno Simons writes;
for what you here say, cannot be found in his writings; but he
shows with many Scriptures, that the Word became flesh (as John
writes in his first chapter), and not the seed of Mary.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Ah, bah,. was Christ then not born of the
seed of David according to the promise; which seed He assumed
in the blessed virgin Mary,</p>

<p>Probably an allusion to the fact that Mary's husband Joseph
was a carpenter.</p>

</div><div id="797"> 

<p>of her most pure blood, and of that became flesh and man,
eh?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> That Christ was born of the seed of David (as
regards the generation of which He was born) we well believe;
but the angel said to Joseph, "That which is begotten in her is of the Holy Ghost," Matt.
1:20. Again, John 16:28, Christ Himself says, "I came forth from
the Father, and am come into the world."</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Ah, bah, Christ says this of His divinity,
that the same proceeded, and came into the world from the
Father, and not from His humanity, you stupid Anabaptist.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> Why then did Christ say, John 6:62, "What and if
ye shall see the Son of man ascend up where he was before?"
Again, John 3:13, "No man hath ascended up to heaven, but he
that came down from heaven, even the Son of man." Again, Paul
says, Eph. 4:9, 10, "That he ascended; what is it but that he
also descended first into the lower parts of the earth? He that
descended is the same also that ascended up far above all
heavens."</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, you stupid Anabaptist, did Christ then
come from heaven into Mary with flesh and blood, with skin and
hair, entrails and all, as He ascended up to heaven? Bah, what
do you say of this, you great, stupid, awkward ass?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> I do not say this; but I say that the Word came
from heaven, and became flesh in Mary, as John writes in his
first chapter.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> And we Catholics say that the most pure
blood of Mary became flesh, in spite of your miserable teeth,
see.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> This defiance to my teeth is a small matter;
but this defiance to the holy Scriptures is a great
blasphemy.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Ha, you damned Anabaptist, I do,not
blaspheme the holy Scriptures; but you revile the holy,
blessed, pure virgin Mary. Bah, I am surprised that you do not
say, that she conceived her son Christ of her husband Joseph,
as your hedgepreachers preach in the Gruthuysbosch; is it not a
fine thing?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> You wrong us greatly, that you say this of us;
for we believe as Matthew writes in his first chapter, "Joseph
took his wife, and knew her not till she had brought forth her
first born son."</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Ah, bah! did Joseph know her afterwards,
eh?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> It matters not to me whether he knew her
afterwards, or not.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Indeed? and do you then not believe in the
perpetual virginity:of the blessed virgin Mary? let us hear
now.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> We find nothing said in the Scriptures,
concerning her perpetual virginity.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, this accursed Anabaptist would pester
me with the Scriptures. Will you then positively believe
nothing else but what is contained in the holy Scriptures? Bah,
hence it comes that you hus despise, reject and revile the
worthy mother of God and imagine, yea, teach and believe that
she did the carnal works of the married state with Joseph her
husband, just as well as your filthy, sinful wives do, with
you, and that she had many children by Joseph her husband; hah,
is this not a fine thing?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> And if she had done the work of the married
state with her husband Joseph, and brought forth more children
(which is ordained and commanded of God, Gen. 1, and is a
blessing) would she thereby have sinned?</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, God blessed Adam and Eve, and said, "Be
fruitful, and multiply, and replenish the earth," before they
transgressed the commandment; but they did not continue in ~h~e
blessing but transgressed the commandment of God, and thereby
the work of marriage became sin to them; bah, now you are
cornered.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> You are cornered yourself; for, Gen. 9: 1, it
is written, "God blessed Noah and his sons, and said unto them:
Be fruitful, and multiply, and replenish the earth." Again, the
prophet Jeremiah, in the twenty-ninth chapter, says, "Thus saith
the Lord of hosts, the God of Israel: Take ye wives, and beget
sons and daughters; and take wives for your sons, and give your
daughters to husbands, that they may bear sons and daughters;
that ye may be increased."</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, tush, tush, you have talked enough;
bah, hear how much talk there is in this miserable Anabaptist.
Bah, now that I hear you talk, I will believe, that you
Anabaptists undisguisedly and presumptuously preach out there
in the Gruthuysbosch, that Maeyken Timmermans, as regards the
work of marriage, was not a hair better than your filthy,
unchaste, carnal wives area Yea, in order utterly to loose the
marriage bond, and to show, that women may have divers
husbands, you wicked Anabaptists dare preach and teach that
Mary had children of many different husbands, like your wives,
whom you have in common-is this not a fine thing?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> Of such things as you here say I never heard
our teachers speak once, when they preached the Word; but it
may sometimes have been asked among us, whether the brethren
and sisters of Christ, of whom the holy Scriptures make
mention, Matthew 13; Mark 6, etc., were natural children by
Joseph or Mary.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn. O you</i> accursed Anabaptist, the holy
Scriptures call some apostles, as St. James, St. Simon, St.
Judas, the Lord's brethren, who were merely His cousins, you
stupid Anabaptists that you are.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> Yet, in the first chapter of Acts it is written
(after the eleven apostles are enumerated), "These all continued with one accord in prayer [and
supplication], with the women, and Mary the mother of Jesus,
and with his brethren." Nevertheless, I will not insist upon,
or maintain, that</p>

</div><div id="798"> 

<p>Mary the mother of Jesus gave birth yet to other
children.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, but when you Anabaptists are assembled
in the Gruthuysbosch, you will maintain it, and other things
yet concerning her, which are still much more wicked and
abominable; for I know it well, that I do.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> We are greatly slandered, even as also you
often stand in your pulpit and preach about us all that you
please.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Indeed, do then any Anabaptists sometimes
come to hear me preach, eh?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> Though we do not hear you preach ourselves, yet
we are told, that you stand in your pulpit and preach, that the
Calvinists and Anabaptists teach and preach, that Mary the
mother of Christ was a filthy whore, for which you are censured
by learned men (in letters which they write to you), how you
slander us thereby.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, * * * you miserable Anabaptist * * *
for such * * * letters I do not care, do you understand this?
And do you know nothing else to say? Bah, you do not answer me
in regard to having the women in common: bah, you Anabaptists
have certainly gone about it very cunningly, that you have the
women and maidens in common; for thereby you gain such a great
number of adherents for your Anabaptism. Bah, but show me once
from the Scriptures, that the women and maidens are to be had
in common, as you Anabaptists do in your devil's supper;--bah,
see; let us hear, whether you will be able to show me
this.</p>

<p><i>Herm. No;</i> for this I could show to you just as
little, as you can show to me from the holy Scriptures, that
the women and maidens must be scourged, as you do in your
secret disciplining. But you have certainly well practiced the
secret disciplining or scourging of the maidens and women, for
thereby you gain such a great retinue of devotaries.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, I would rather * * * than reply to all
your talk; but answer my question.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> All such barefaced lies, as that we have the
women and maidens in common, I do not deem worthy of an
answer.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Ah, bah I Is it a barefaced lie, that you
Anabaptists have the women in common? Why then does all the
world speak of it, and why then is it printed in so many books,
which by us Catholics are written against you, and which I
daily read. Fie, you adulterers! fie, you dishonorers of
marriage I</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> All that are of the world are liars; hence you
and your Catholics cannot be believed.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Ah, am I of the world, * * * you accursed,
bewitched, damned Anabaptist that you are. Bah, you stupid
beast, and do you not see, that I am spiritual? But you evince
worldly works by having all the women in common; but I have
vowed chastity; do you understand this, you dishonorer of
marriage that you are?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> We do not dishonor marriage; but if you are
spiritual, and have vowed chastity, then it is surprising that
you have your delight in this carnal, unclean, secret
disciplining, or scourging of the women.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn. O you</i> devilish Anabaptist and dishonorer of
marriage, I could almost fly into your eyes or into your mouth;
bah, what do you understand about my secret disciplining which
I employ with my devotaries? Bah, you are filthy, carnal,
unchaste, voluptuous rogues, that you thus use the women in
common, like dogs. Yes, you damned dishonorers of marriage are
nothing more than rotten, stinking dogs, carrions; for you go
about it in this respect like dogs, though you would deny it
before us; bah, fie, fie! shame upon you * * * Bah, if I cannot
prevail upon you with kindness, I must try whether I can do it
with severity; see now.</p>

<p><i>Clerk of the criminal court.</i> Ah, father Cornelis, do
be modest and keep your temper.</p>

<p><i>Recorder.</i> Yes, converse together with kind, calm
words; for it seems that you will continue to quarrel and
bicker here like harlots.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Bah, my lords and may I not accuse him of
what is true? I suppose so. Did you not hear yourselves
yesterday, that that * * * bishop of the Anabaptists at first
also wanted to deny everything; but when he perceived that I
was so well acquainted with the matter, he acknowledged that
there were some among them, who taught and practiced these
things in secret, and when I soundly berated and convicted him
with plain and conclusive arguments, he denied it no longer.
Bah, why then should I not also have liberty to accuse and
convict this one of it? Am I not come here to instruct and
convert him? I think I am. See with what we are tormented. Why
does he deny a matter which is true? * * * One may certainly
talk here, I suppose?</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> Then I may also reply to you, that this matter
is not true, because these things are lies; and I presume that
Jacob, my fellow brother did well reply against it.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Yes, until I told him that the Anabaptists
at Amsterdam and elsewhere, in Holland, ran stark-naked through
the streets, men, women, boys and maidens, and said to one
another, "My spirit desires your flesh." Bah I was this not a
fine thing, eh?</p>

<p><i>Herm. No,</i> this was not a fine thing; and hence we
never regarded such as our brethren.</p>

<p><i>Fr.</i> Corn. Bah! why would you deny it so strongly; for
it is well enough known, that you Anabaptists do not regard the
sacrament of marriage at all, because for a very little matter
you loose and sever the marriage bond.</p>

<p><i>Herm.</i> Since you bring so many untrue charges against
us in regard to our marriage, I must ask you something
respecting marriage that concerns you, and which is certainly
no lie, for Paul writes thus to Timothy, in the fourth chapter
(first</p>

</div><div id="799"> 

<p>epistle), "Now the Spirit speaketh expressly, that in the
latter times some shall depart from the faith, giving heed to
seducing spirits, and doctrines of devils; speaking lies in
hypocrisy; having their conscience seared with a hot iron;
forbidding to marry, and commanding to abstain from meats,
which God hath created to be received with thanksgiving."</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Tush, tush hold your tongue; for we do not
want any more preaching here; bah, begone, get you hence. * *
*</p>

<p><i>Heron.</i> If I could be gone .from here I would no
longer listen to your blasphemies and lies.</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn.</i> Ah, you accursed, hardened, petrified
Anabaptist, how the devils in hell (whither you will shortly
go) will sit in your accursed mouth, with burning pitch,
brimstone, tar, and Greek fire; just wait.</p>

<p><i>Herm. No;</i> but I shall go under the altar which John
saw in his Apocalypse, as is written in the sixth chapter, to
the souls of them that, were slain for the Word of God, and for
the testimony which they held; who cried with a loud voice,
saying,"How long, O Lord, holy and true, dost thou not judge
and avenge our blood on them that dwell on the earth?"</p>

<p><i>Fr. Corn. Yes,</i> the devil's martyr you will be. * * *
But this preaching would probably last all night; hence I go to
my convent, and let you preach as long as you will, you damned,
accursed Anabaptist, Sacramentarian, Trinitarian, and marriage
dishonorer that you are; see.</p>

<p>In the meantime one of the aforesaid two martyrs, namely,
Jacob de Roore, or the chandler, while imprisoned, wrote
several letters replete with holy and divine things, which we
deem it profitable to communicate to the reader; they are the
following</p><br />

<h1>THE FIRST LETTER OF JACOB THE CHANDLER, WRITTEN TO HIS WIFE</h1> 

<p>The eternal, imperishable wisdom of God our heavenly Father,
the great love of His Son our Lord Jesus Christ, and the power
of His Holy Spirit, for the comforting of your mind, these I
wish you my very dear and beloved wife, as a cordial greeting
from God, through Jesus Christ our Lord and Saviour. Amen.</p>

<p>My affectionately beloved and chosen wife, be pleased to
know that my mind is tolerably well, the Lord be praised
forever for His grace, except that I am very sorrowful for your
and for the children's sake, since I love you and them from the
heart, so that I know of nothing under heaven for which I would
be willing to leave you; but for the Lord and His invisible
riches we must forsake everything, through the love of God,
which is shed abroad in our hearts by the Holy Ghost.</p>

<p>Hence Christ says, "He that loveth father or mother more than
me is not worthy of me: and he hat loveth son or daughter more
than me is not worthy of me. And he that taketh not his cross,
and followeth after me, is not worthy of me," Matthew 10:37,
38. And he also says, "If any man come to me, and hate not his
father, and mother, ...he cannot be my disciple." Luke 14:26.
Yes, brother and sisters, wife and children, and our own life
also; with all that we possess, or we cannot be Christ's
disciples; although this hatred extends only as far as these
things cleave to us, to draw us away from Christ. Hence we must
overcome and forsake them through the love of God, for thereby
we prove that we love God above all, with all our strength, and
with all our ability, which is the greatest commandment in the
law, of which Paul says, "The end of the commandment is charity
out of a pure heart, and of a good conscience, and of faith
unfeigned." I Tim. 1:5. By this love and faith one must confess
Christ unfeignedly, and not forsake Him for father or mother,
for wife or children, or for his own life. Hence Solomon
writes, "Love is strong as death; jealousy is cruel as the
grave: the coals thereof are coals of fire, and a flame of the
Lord. Many waters cannot quench love, neither can the floods
drown it: if a man would give all the substance of his house
for love, it would utterly be contemned." (Sol. Song 8:6, 7);
for it cannot be bought with riches, but it is given for nought
by God, through the Holy Ghost, to those that seek Him in
truth.</p>

<p>Therefore, I pray you, my dear wife, that you seek to
possess your soul in patience, and do not grieve too much on
account of this my trial, which happens through God's
permission: For I had thought to come and take leave, and to
send you away with H., or with someone else; but the Lord did
not permit me-He knows why it is. Still I am grieving much on
your account, for I leave you in great distress. But I hope
that the Lord, who has taken me from you, will help you and
provide for you, according to His promise, since He feeds the
,ravens and little animals, because they are His creatures; how
much more then shall He provide for His elect, who cry day and
night unto Him? Therefore did Peter say, "Cast all your care
upon the Lord; for he careth for you." I Peter 5:7. As also
David says, "The eyes of all wait upon thee; and thou givest
them their meat in due season." Ps. 145:15.</p>

<p>Thus my dear wife, trust in the Lord, this I pray. you;
for He that ministereth seed to the sower, will also minister
bread for your food. II Cor. 9:10. And move to the country of
C., where there is much tranquility. And the brethren said,
that they would assist us in whatever they could. I had made
such good arrangements, that I hoped that it would please you
well, which I intend to let you know yet.</p>

<p>Furthermore, I pray you, my dear and much beloved wife, that
you do the best with my children, to bring them up in the fear
of God, with good instruction and chastening, while they are
still young</p>

</div><div id="800"> 

<p>for with the rod their back is bowed, and they are brought
into obedience to their parents. Hence it is written, "He that
loveth his son causeth him oft to feel the rod; and he that
spareth his rod, hateth his son: but he that loveth him
instructeth him betimes." Sir. 30:1; Prov. 13:24. For
instruction must accompany chastisement: 'for chastisement
demands obedience, and if one is to obey, he must first be
instructed. This instruction does not consist in hard words, or
loud yelling; for this the children learn to imitate; but if
one conducts himself properly towards them, they have a good
example, and learn propriety; for by the children the parents
are known. And parents must not provoke their children to
anger, lest they be discouraged; but must bring them up with
admonition and good instruction. Eph. 6:4; Col. 3:21.</p>

<p>Thus, my dear and much beloved wife, do the best with them,
this I pray you; and take heed to yourself, that you may
receive the end of your faith, even the salvation of your soul.
I Peter I:9. And do not faint because of the tribulation which
we must suffer, but remember how the innocent lamb, Christ
Jesus, had to suffer from the beginning in the faithful. Hence
the Lord says, "He that toucheth you, toucheth the apple of mine
eye." Zech. 2:8. To Paul He said, "Saul, Saul, why persecutest
thou me?" And Paul said, "Who art thou, lord?" He said, "I am
Jesus of Nazareth whom thou persecutest." Acts 9:4, 5. Not that
he persecuted Christ according to the flesh; for the latter had
died, before he persecuted: but he persecuted the Christians,
in whom Christ lived according to the spirit; for they do not
live to themselves, but Christ lives in them. Rom. 14:7. Hence,
when they suffer, they do not suffer for their own name, but
for the name of Christ; for if they lived to themselves, they
would not be in trouble, for the world would love them; but
because they are not of the world, and because Christ has
chosen them from the world, therefore the world hates them.
John 15:19. Hence Peter says, "if ye suffer for the name of
Christ, happy are ye; for the spirit of glory and of God
resteth upon you: on their part he is evil spoken of, but on
your part he is glorified." I Peter 4:14. For they are
comforted by the same Spirit, so that we know: As the
sufferings of Christ abound in them, so their consolation also
aboundeth by Christ, namely, if they suffer with Him, they
shall also rejoice with Him; for their light affliction, which
is but for a moment, worketh for them a far more exceeding and
eternal weight of glory; because they look not at the things
which are seen, but at the things which are not seen: for the
things which are seen are temporal; but the things which are
not seen are eternal. II Corinthians 1:5; II Tim. 2:12; II Cor.
4:17, 18. Hence Paul says, "I reckon that the sufferings of this
present time are not worthy to be compared with the glory which
shall be revealed in us; for we know that, if our earthly house
of this tabernacle were dissolved, we have a building of God, a
house not made with hands, eternal in the heavens, where
mortality will be swallowed up of life; for there shall be no
more death, neither sorrow, neither any heat, for God shall
wipe away all tears from their eyes." Rom. 8:18; II Cor. 5:1;
Heb. 11:10; II Cor: 5:4; Rev: 2i:4; Isa. 25:8.</p>

<p>Then they shall leap as the calves of the stall; then they
shall triumph upon Mount Sion, have palms in' their hands, and
receive the crown of honor, which God has prepared for all them
that love Him and His appearing. Mal. 4:2; II Esd. 2:42; Wisd.
5:16.</p>

<p>Thus, my dear wife, comfort yourself with these words, and
be patient in your tribulation, this I pray you; for though I
am thus taken from you, think that we are not assured of each
other; for we must all die, and the Lord has long permitted us
to be together, considering the perils in which we walked.</p>

<p>There have been so many within our time, who had to leave
each other, some through imprisonment, some dying of sickness.
But there is no more glorious death, than that for the name of
Christ; for not all are made worthy of God to suffer for His
name, for this is acceptable with God, says Peter. I Peter
2:20. Hence he and John went their way rejoicing that they were
counted worthy to suffer shame for His name. Acts 5:41.</p>

<p>O my dear and beloved wife, it would greatly rejoice me if I
could hear that you were of good cheer; for every time that I
have written your or the children's names, I could not refrain
from weeping. Nevertheless, as regards my own self, I am of
reasonably good cheer, the Lord be praised for His grace; so
that I would not have thought it before my apprehension-so weak
did I find myself. Hence Christ did truly say, "I will not leave
you comfortless; but I will come to you." John 14: 18. Herewith
I will commend you, my dear and much beloved wife, to the Lord,
who is able to keep your treasure, and to give you an
inheritance with all them who through faith in Jesus Christ
shall be sanctified. May the Lord Almighty strengthen you by
His Spirit. Amen.</p>

<p>Written on the 24th of April, by me, Jacob, your husband.
Have this copied, and keep it in remembrance of me; for I do
not know whether I can write you any more. Greet all the
brethren and sisters much in my name, and all them that fear
God; my children B. and his wife; your brother T. and his wife;
J. and F. T. and F. his brother; J. de L. and his wife; and my
friends at Kortrijck.</p>

<p class="c27">Alle die lijden na den Wille Godts, wilt
hierop</p>

<p class="c27">mercken,</p>

<p class="c27">Die bevelen haer Zielen den getrouwen
Scheppers</p>

<p class="c27">met goede wercken. (I Pet. 4:19.)</p>

<p class="c5">JACOB, your husband.</p>

</div><div id="801"> 

<h2>THE SECOND LETTER OF JACOB THE CHANDLER, TO THE CHURCH</h2> 

<p>Affectionately beloved brethren, much grace and mercy be
unto you from God our heavenly Father, through Christ Jesus His
only begotten Sdn, our Lord and Saviour, through whom the Holy
Ghost is given us, that we should be led by Him, and guided
into all truth, in order thus to be a light in this world, so
that we might with a good conscience, praise our Father who is
in heaven; to this end may the Lord give His ,grace, that it
may so remain with me, and with all my beloved brethren and
sisters, to the end of their life, this I wish them as a
friendly greeting and cordial adieu.</p>

<p>Futhermore, my dear brethren, know that, while in the
country of C., I was greatly prompted, to appear among you once
more, that we might once more enjoy ourselves together; but the
Lord prevented it by my imprisonment. Yet, I could not forbear
to write you a little, in order to exhort and refresh your
minds, so that, as you received the Lord Jesus Christ, you
might go on in Him, and be rooted and built up in Him, and
abound therein with thanksgiving. Col. 2:6, 7. For, my dear
brethren and sisters, if we do not abide in Him, it is all
labor lost, and we cannot be partakers of His abundant riches,
which He has prepared for us in heaven; for we are made
partakers of Christ, if we hold the beginning of our confidence
steadfast unto the end. Heb. 3:14. And if H e draw back, His
soul will have no pleasure in us. Heb. 10:38. Yes, dear
friends, if we abide not in Him. We are like a branch that does
not abide in the vine, and forthwith withers. It is therefore
cut off from the vine, and cast into the fire; for it is of no
other use to men, for the prophet says, "One cannot make a
wooden pin of it." Ezek. 15:5. Hence, according to the words of
Christ, such Christians who do not abide in Christ, will be cut
off, and cast into the fire of hell; for they are of no use to
Christ in heaven; hence there shall in no wise enter into it
anything that defileth, neither whatsoever worketh abomination,
[or maketh a lie:] but they which are written in the Lamb's
book of life. Rev. 21:26. Therefore I exhort you, my dear
brethren, with the apostle John, "Abide in him, that, when he
shall, appear, we may have confidence, and not be ashamed
before him at his coming" (I John 2:28); that we may then not
be like the foolish virgins who had to remain without with
shame, because they had taken their lamps and no oil in them.
For what can it avail us, that we have simply been baptized,
and separated from popery, as though we would be virgins who
did not want to remain in such spiritual whoredom;and yet do
not have the love of God in us, by which to lead a pure and
chaste conversation, to the honor of our Bridegroom; in this
case we are foolish to think that by such conduct we can please
Christ. For David says, "The King's daughters shall be brought
unto the King in glorious adornment." Ps. 45:14. Therefore love
is the bond of perfectness; for he that abides in love abides
in God; for God is love. Through this love we keep His
commandments, and His commandments are not grievous. Col. 3:14;
I John 4:8; 5:3.</p>

<p>Thus, my dear brethren and sisters, let your loins be girded
about, and your lights burning; and ye yourselves like unto men
that wait for their lord lwhen he will return from the
wedding]; that, when he cometh and knocketh, they may open unto
him immediately. Blessed are those servants, whom the Lord
[when He cometh] shall find watching. Luke 12:35-37. For these
are wise virgins, who have learned to know the Bridegroom; who
know that He takes pleasure in their beauty; whose beauty lies
not outwardly in braided hair, or in putting on of apparel; but
inwardly in a chaste conversation, in a modest behavior, which
is manifested before all men. I Tim. 2:9; I Peter 3:3. These
virgins are baptized not only with water, but with the Holy
Ghost and with fire; for they do not only guard against outward
idolatry, but will not consent to sin in anywise; nor do they
love the world, or the things that are in it; for therein lies
not the love of the Father. For all that is in the world, the
lust of the flesh, and the lust of the eyes, and the pride of
life, is not of the Father, but is of the world, by which so
many;.a Christian is seduced; even as it is the cause of ruin
to many a young girl, when she begins to get proud. Then she
becomes desirous after fine clothing; then the young fellows
make their addresses to her, who at first do not speak of
carnal indulgence, for this would be too blunt for an honorable
maiden; but they seek first to incite her heart to love, after
which carnal sin will the more readily be consented to.</p>

<p>Thus also, my dear brethren, Satan goes to work with many a
Christian; he does not at first tempt them to idolatry, for
they would rather suffer themselves to be burnt, when they are
pure in their conscience, than resort to idolatry. But he
shoots such arrows at them, that they become earthlyminded,
seek their own more than that which is Christ's or their
neighbor's, and dissipate their minds in their occupation and
in traffic, and thus the love of the world is apprehended, and
temporal riches are cherished more than the eternal. Think, my
brethren and sisters, when Satan has gained this point, how
easily then one consents to serve idols, and to wed the world;
and thus the door is opened wide to Satan, for the light has
become darkness, and the day is changed to night, in
consequence of which one's shame or nakedness is not seen; for
they are alienated from the life of God through the blindness
of their heart. Eph. 4:18. Therefore, dear brethren, take heed,
lest there be in any of you an evil heart of unbelief [in
departing from the living God]. But exhort one another daily,
while it is called today: lest any of you be hardened through
the deceitfulness of sin. Heb. 3:12, 13. And take heed that no
one neglect the grace of God, lest any root of bitterness
spring up,</p>

</div><div id="802"> 

<p>and thereby many be defiled. II Cor. 6:1; Heb. 12:15.
Therefore endeavor to keep the unity of the Spirit in the bond
of peace (Eph. 4:3), having the same love among yourselves,
that you may not be a stumbling-block or offense to one
another. But if you see any brother or sister err from the way
of truth, run after him, and instruct and admonish him in a
meek spirit, until he becomes a Christian, or until he strays
into some carnal works; that you may be natured and minded as
Christ, and not abuse His ordinance; for one can be too severe
as well as too indulgent in reproving. Thus, my dear brethren,
have good care for one another, and let each take heed to
himself; for this is a perilous time, and love is seen to wax
cold in many. Therefore let each lift up the hands which hang
down, and the feeble knees; and make straight paths for your
feet, lest you stumble like a lame man, and be not slothful m
your business, but be fervent in spirit, and redeem the time;
for your time here may perhaps be short, for Satan is stirred
up to wrath, knowing perhaps that he has but little time. Heb.
12:12, 13; Rom. 12:11.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear brethren, be vigilant everywhere, and
faint not on account of the tribulation which is now seen; but
trust only in the Lord, for He has said, "I will never leave
thee, nor forsake thee." So that we may boldly say,"The Lord is
my helper, and I will not fear what man shall do unto me." Heb.
13:5, 6. For the sufferings which men inflict upon us are
transient; hence Christ says, "Be not afraid of them that kill
the body, and after that have no more that they can do; but
fear him, which after he hath killed hath power also to cast
soul and body into hell." Luke-12:4,5. But if we suffer with
Him, we shall also rejoice with Him.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear brethren, be faithful unto death, and you
shall receive the crown of life. Revelation 2:10. Think, dear
brethren, if the children of this world were promised the crown
of Spain on some condition, how diligently they would work, how
joyfully they would run to obtain it. How much more ought we to
be joyful in our tribulation, and with patience run the race
that is set before us, since the crown of life is promised us,
with which the crown of Spain cannot be compared; for this is a
perishable crown, and its glory is not to be compared with the
glory which shall be revealed in us. Therefore Moses chose
rather to live in affliction with the people of God, than to
enjoy the pleasures of sin for a season; esteeming the reproach
of Christ greater riches than the treasures in Egypt for he had
respect unto the recompense of the reward. Heb. 11:25, 26.</p>

<p>My dear brethren and sisters, may the Lord through faith
give you such a heart and vision, that you may with Moses and
all the saints of God know what God has prepared for them that
love Him; for the righteous shall live forever, for the Lord is
their reward, and the care of them is with the Most High.
Therefore shall they receive a glorious kingdom, and a
beautiful crown from the Lord's hand, and they shall shine
forth as the sun in the throne of heaven. Wisd. 5:15, 16; Matt.
13:43.</p>

<p>Hence the apostle writes, "If our earthly house of this
tabernacle were dissolved, we have a building of God, a house
not made with hands, eternal in the heavens." II Cor. 5:1. By
this the apostle indicates, that though our earthly body be put
to death here, it shall rise again, and be shed about with
heavenly glory. Therefore he writes, "Our citizenship is in
heaven; from whence also we look for the Saviour Jesus, who
shall change our vile body, that it may be fashioned like unto
his glorious body." Phil. 3:20, 21; Tit. 2:13. By this he again
indicates, how gloriously the body will be changed after the
resurrection; now it is weak, then it shall become strong; now
natural, then spiritual; now mortal, but then immortal; for
this corruptible must put on incorruption, and this mortal,
immortality; then shall the terrible death be swallowed up in
victory; then shall the last enemy, which is death, be
destroyed; then shall be no more death; neither sorrow, nor any
heat; then shall the tears be wiped away from the eyes; then
shall they inherit all things with Christ, because they have
overcome; then shall He lead them to the fountain of living
water and feed them with the hidden heavenly bread, that they
shall neither hunger nor thirst any more; there shall the
spiritual Solomon dwell in perfect peace with the spiritual
Israel, for all his enemies shall be made His footstool.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear brethren and sisters, be steadfast and
immovable, always abounding in the work of the Lord, for as
much as ye know that your labor is not in vain in the Lord. I
Cor. 15:58.</p>

<p>Herewith I commend my dear brethren and sisters to the Lord,
who is able to keep your treasure. and to give you an
inheritance among all them that are sanctified. Pray the Lord
for me, that I may contend steadfastly, and continue in the
hope in which I (the Lord be praised forever) still stand at
the present time. And I pray you, dear brethren, do the best
with my wife and children.</p>

<p>Written by me, Jacob the Chandler, your weak brother and
minister, on the 18th of April.</p>

<p class="c27">Alle die lijden na den Wille Godts, wilt hierop
mercken,</p>

<p class="c27">Die bevelen haer Zielen den getrouwen Scheppers
met goede Wercken. ( I Peter 4:19.)</p><br />

<h2>THE THIRD LETTER OF JACOB THE CHANDLER, TO HIS CHILDREN</h2> 

<p>May the same God that blessed Abraham, Isaac and Jacob, also
bless you my children, with all manner of spiritual blessings
in heavenly places, that you may from your youth learn to know
the Lord, and fear and obey Him all the days of your life. This
is the most special request that I make to God, that you may be
eternally saved, and that the name of the Lord may be praised
through you; unto</p>

</div><div id="802">
<p>211,601</p> 

<p>which name be praise and glory now and forever. Amen.</p>

<p>My children, hear the instruction of your father, and
forsake not the law of your mother (Prov. 1:8; 4:1); be always
ready to do -what you are commanded of God; that is, that you
shall from your youth learn to know, fear and obey Him; for
obedience springs from the fear of God, and the fear of God
comes through the knowledge of God.</p>

<p>Hence Solomon writes, "The fear of the Lord is the beginning
of knowledge." Prov. 1:7. For a child that knows his father,
that he is so honorable and just, that he will not have his
children run in the streets with other children, fight,
quarrel, use bad language, bring home stolen things: children
who know their father to be thus, are afraid to do this,
knowing, that if they do this they shall be beaten. Thus also,
my dear children, the Lord is a just God, who will not tolerate
sin, but will punish them that commit it. Therefore we must
fear Him, and not commit sin; for the fear of God driveth out
sin, and he that feareth God will do good. Prov. 16:6; Sir.
15:1. As Solomon says, "The fear of the Lord is a fountain of
wisdom, to depart from the snares of death." Prov. 14:27. For,
my dear children, the wages of sin is death. Romans 6:23. Hence
since the fear of God drives out sin, through the fear of.God,
the cause which brings us into death; that is, sin, is avoided.
Therefore, my children, begin from your youth to walk in the
fear of the Lord, that you may not at any time consent to sin,
and may not forsake the commandments of your Lord and God; but
fear the Lord, while He may be feared. For they that fear the
Lord walk in the right way; for the fear of the Lord is the
beginning of wisdom and to depart from evil is understanding:
Prov. 14:2; Job 28:28.</p>

<p>Hence, my children, fear the Lord, and depart from evil. For
the prophet Jeremiah says, "How good it is for a man, from his
youth to take upon him the yoke of the Lord, and for one that
is forsaken, to be patient, when he meeteth with adversity."
Lam. 3:27, 28. And Sirach says, "My child, from thy youth
receive instruction, till thine old age, and thou shalt find
wisdom" (Sir. 6:18); for the wisdom of God teaches, that we are
to receive God's instruction, in order to be taught thereby,
how we are to depart from evil."For wisdom crieth without; she
uttereth her voice in the streets, saying: How long, ye little
children, will ye love childishness? and how long shall fools
desire the things that are hurtful to -them? and the unwise
hate knowledge?" Prov. 1:20. For this is the nature of
children; they love to run and play in the streets, where they
learn all kinds of wickedness, and do not like to be chastised
for it, and kept in the house. By this they are known as
children; for they know not how injurious this is to them; for
thereby they become alienated from the knowledge of God, and so
grow up in wickedness, that sometimes they can only with great
difficulty cometo the truth. Therefore wisdom calls the
children of Israel little children, because they are sometimes
so wicked, that they want to live to themselves, and hate the
chastening of the Lord, which is nevertheless administered to
them out of love, that they should not be condemned with the
world. I Corinthians 11:32. Therefore, my dear children, beware
of all bad company, that might seduce you to cherish the world;
for the world lieth in wickedness, and will perish with its
lusts. I John 5:19; 2:17. Therefore, my children, love not the
world, neither the things that are in it; for all that is in
the world, the lust of the flesh, and the lust of the eyes, and
the pride of life, is not of the Father, but is of the world.
2:15, 16. Hence, abstain from fleshly lusts, which war against
the soul. I Pet. 2:11. And Paul says: Flee youthful lusts (II
Tim. 2:22); for youthful lusts have plunged many into ruin,
into lasciviousness, whoredom and many improper things.
Therefore, my children, beware of whoredom, and all unedifying
conduct, in which whoredom has often originated; as dancing and
leaping, and the practice of young men and maidens sitting
together at the beer table, drinking to intoxication, and
speaking improper words, and besides what is done in secret
would be too shameful to mention. Tobit 4:12; I Thess. 4:3. O
my children, beware of such things; for the apostle says: All
they that do such things have no part in the kingdom of God. I
Corinthians 6:10. But when you are grown up, and cannot
contain, marry in the fear of God. Pray God to provide you a
faithful helpmeet, to walk in the fear of God, with a broken,
lowly and humble heart.</p>

<p>My children, do not in any wise let pride rule over you in
your words or thoughts, as Tobit admonishes his son (Tob.
4:13); for the Lord rejects such as are proud in their hearts,
but He has exalted the humble. Hence David says, "I thank thee,
O Lord, that thou hast humbled me; for before I was humbled I
went astray." Ps. 119:67. Therefore, my children, never exalt
yourselves in your hearts, but condescend to men of low estate;
for pride goeth before destruction, and a haughty spirit before
a fall; for they become so proud, that they reject the word of
the Lord, and live according to the desires of their hearts;
therefore the Lord shall also not regard them. Rom. 12:16;
Prov. 16:18; Hos. 4:6.</p>

<p>My children, heed the instruction of your father, and forget
it not. Refrain your tongue from backbiting, and beware of
lying; for the mouth that lieth slayeth the soul. Wisd. 1:11.
For liars have no part in the new Jerusalem; but their part is
in the lake which burneth with fire and brimstone</p>

<p>which is the second death. Rev. 21:8. And the backbiter
causes much contention and discord, and also stirs up strife
and envy, and separates friends. Prov. 16:28. Hence Solomon
says, "Where no wood is there the fire goeth out: so where there
is no tale-bearer, the strife ceaseth." 26:20. Hence he further
writes, "Put away from thee a froward</p>

</div><div id="804"> 

<p>mouth and perverse lips put far from thee;" as also Moses
writes, "Let there be no backbiter or slanderer among you."
4:24; Lev. 19:16. Therefore, my children, beware of backbiting,
and wherever you are at home, keep your lips sealed, and tell
not out of the house what is done in it; keep still about all
in regard to which silence is expedient, then men will love
you. Always be faithful to people, and beware of stealing, for
it is a great sin; and thieves have no part in the kingdom of
God ( I Cor. 6:10), nor is a thief trusted or loved by any one;
but wherever he goes, his hands are watched. Thus, my children,
always content yourselves honorably in the fear of God, and
beware of all sin and transgression; and do not envy one
another, for through envy Cain slew his brother, and the
patriarchs sold their brother Joseph; for envy breaks all
friendship, causes a man to forget all benefits, and is bent
only upon doing harm. The envious man rejoices not when he sees
his brother or sister, but turns his face the other way; nor is
he grieved at his brother's misfortune, but is pleased when the
latter meets with adversity. Hence James truly says, "If ye have
bitter envy and strife in your hearts, glory not, and lie not
against the truth.</p>

<p>. . For where envying and strife is, there is confusion and
every evil work." Jas. 3:14, 16. Therefore, my children, do not
envy one another, nor any one else; but love one another out of
a pure heart, as brothers and sisters ought to; not as Cain,
who was of that wicked one, and slew his brother (I John 3:12);
but as Christ left an example, who gave His life for us.</p>

<p>Hence you must also so love one another, not in word,
neither in tongue, but in deed and in truth (I John 3:18); that
you may be brothers and sisters, not only according to the
flesh, but also according to the faith of the Son of God; for
He says, "By this shall all men know that ye are my disciples if
ye have love one to another." John 13:35. Hence John
writes, "Beloved, let us love one another</p>

<p>for love is of God: and every one that loveth is born of
God, and knoweth God. He that loveth not, knoweth not God; for
God is love." I John 4:7, 8. Hence He would have, that children
should love one another with true, unfeigned brotherly love,
with a pure heart, as being born not of natural seed, which is
corruptible, but of incorruptible seed, namely, by the Word of
God, which abideth forever. I Pet. 1:22, 23.</p>

<p>Thus, - my dear children, I pray and admonish you, love, and
bear with, one another, and let one be subject to the other;
the younger shall obey the older, that there may be no
contention or discord among you. And you, Katelijntgen and
Kopken, are the oldest; when you are grown up, take care of the
other children, and help them with the labor of your hands,
thus showing mercy to them, that you may be children of your
Father which is.in heaven; for you will perhaps not have your
mother very long, and then you are in duty bound to do the best
for one another.Thus, my children, heed the instruction of your
father, and forget it not. Obey your mother; for it is proper
that children should obey their parents, as is written in
Ecclesiasticus, "The Lord will that the parents should be
honored by the children" 3:2. For this was the first
commandment in the law, which had a promise, "Honor thy father
and mother that thou mayest live long on the earth." Ex. 20:12.
And the greatest honor that children can show their parents,
is, to obey them. To obey them in everything that is not
contrary to the honor of God, but when the honor of God is
concerned, parents have no power to rule over them, but are
themselves in duty bound to admonish their children, to obey
the Lord. For they had to teach the law to their children, when
they went to sleep, and when they rose up; in which law it wall
written, that God must be loved above all. Deut. 6t7. Therefore
children are not bound to love their parents more than God, and
God-fearing parents are not to require this, but are to exhort
their children to the same, that they should exercise
themselves in the love of God, that is; keep His commandments,
and be humble before their God (Mic. 6:8), as I hope, my
children, that also your mother will do. Hence obey her in
love, and be not disobedient to her; for it is written in the
law, that he that cursed, smote or disobeyed his father or
mother, had to die, so great a sin it is before the Lord. Ex.
21:15,17.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear children, though you lose me, do not be
froward to your mother, but obey her the more, for the whole
care of you will now be committed to her. Hence, my children,
never grieve her in your life; for in Ecclesiasticus it is
written, "He that forsaketh his father is a blasphemer; and he
that angereth his mother is cursed of God." 3:16. Therefore,
love her, and remember how many pains she suffered on your
account, and how she bore you under her heart nine months, and
how she will have to undergo much yet, to earn bread for you.
Tob. 4:3, 4; II Macc. 7:27. Hence, dear children, when you are
grown up, apply yourselves diligently to labor, that you may
help your mother to gain a livelihood. And be not idle; for
from slothfulness springs much evil, for it makes thieves of
children, and harlots of girls, and thus they finally come to a
bad end. Therefore, my dear children, do not desire this, but
willingly work and labor with your hands that which is
honorable, that you may have to give to him that needeth.
Ephesians 4:28. And if your mother take another husband, obey
him as your father, and honor him; for he will have to care for
you, and instruct and teach you as though you were his own
children. Therefore, you, as obedient children, are to receive,
and not to despise, his instruction. O my dear children, I,
Jacob, your father, have left you this as a testament, that you
may remember me the better, and know wherein I stood and why I
died, of which you need not be ashamed, since it was for the
name of Christ. For it is for the Lord's sake</p>

</div><div id="805"> 

<p>that I leave you; there is nothing under heaven so dear to
me that for it I should be willing to leave you; but for the
Lord's sake everything must be forsaken, father and mother,
wife and children, yea, one's own life, or we cannot be His
disciples. Deut. 33:9. But he that for His sake forsakes all
this, shall receive a hundredfold, and hereafter everlasting
life. Matthew 19:29. Thus, my dear children, with this
confidence I leave you. The Lord grant you His grace, that I
may find you in life eternal. I now go before you the way which
Christ Jesus and all the saints of God went before us: and I
know that all that will live godly in Christ Jesus must suffer
persecution. II Tim. 3:12. And Paul says, "Unto you it is given
in the behalf of Christ, not only to believe on him, but also
to suffer for his sake." Phil. 1:29. For what we suffer; we
suffer not for our own sakes, but for the Lord's sake, because
we believe in Him, and by faith follow and obey Him, which the
world will not tolerate, for the prophet says, "Truth is fallen
in the street; truth languisheth in prison; equity cannot
enter; he that.would depart from evil, and do good, maketh
himself a prey." Isa. 59:14, 15. As Christ says, "If ye were of
the world, the world would love his own; but because ye are not
of the world, but I have chosen you out of the world, therefore
the world hateth you." John 15:19. Hence James says, "The
friendship of this world is enmity with God; if you would be
the friend of the world, you will be the enemy of God." Jas.
4:4. Far my dear children; if you would be the friend of the
world, you will have to follow the world in her improprieties
and false worship; hence Paul writes, "If I yet pleased men, I
should not be the servant of Christ?" Gal. 1:10. For such love
the Father hath bestowed upon us that we should be called His
children; therefore the world knoweth us not, neither knoweth
it Him. I John 3:1. Therefore, if they have called the master
of the house Beelzebub, it is no wonder that they also call
them of his household so; for the servant cannot be above his
lord, nor the disciple above his master. Matt. 10:25, 24.</p>

<p>Herewith I will commend you, my dear children, and your
mother, to the Lord, for whose sake I hope to leave you; who is
able to care for you, and to keep you from all evil. The Lord
grant you His grace, that you may grow up in the knowledge of
God through the Holy Ghost, so that, according to the right
judgment of God, you may be found righteous for His kingdom,
through Jesus Christ our Lord and Saviour, to whom be praise
and glory forever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>Written on the second and third days of May, A. D. 1569, in
prison at Bruges, where I was confined for the testimony of
Jesus, under the house of the Vrye; by me JACOB the
CHANDLER.</p>

<p>This I send my dear children, as a brief testament; I also
hope to write them my faith, which may serve to show them upon
what faith their father died.</p>

<p class="c27">Alle die lijden na den wille Godts, wilt
hierop</p>

<p class="c27">mercken,</p>

<p class="c27">Die bevelen haer Zielen den getrouwen
Shepper</p>

<p class="c27">met goede Wercken. I Pet. 4:19.</p><br />

<h1>THE FOURTH LETTER OF JACOB THE CHANDLER, WRITTEN TO HIS CHILDREN; BEING PROPERLY A CONFESSION OF HIS FAITH</h1> 

<p>My chosen dear children, I hope briefly to write you my
faith, that you may know, that 1 did not die as a deceiver or
heretic, but for the true faith, which avails before God.</p>

<p>1. I believe and confess, that there is one true God, who
created and made heaven and earth, and the sea, and all that
therein is, by His eternal, Almighty and incomprehensible Word,
which was with God in the beginning, and was God with the
Father. Gen. 1:1; John 1:1, 2.</p>

<p>2. And God on the sixth day made man after His image or
likeness, that is, according to His nature. But man did not
remain as created, through the subtilty of the serpent, in whom
the devil worked, so that he brought Adam with his whole seed
into death, as is written. Gen. 3.</p>

<p>God created man immortal, and made him according to the
image of His own likeness; but through the envy of the devil
death came into the world, and all that are of his side follow
him. Wisdom 23:24. As also Esdras writes, "The first Adam having
an evil heart transgressed and was overcome and also all them
that are born of him." And he further says, "O thou Adam, what
hast thou done! for though it was thou that sinned, thou art
not fallen alone, but also all we that come of thee." II Esd.
7:48.</p>

<p>3. Now when the man Adam with his whole seed had fallen into
death, the merciful Father through grace many times promised
His Son, who as a spotless lamb, that had been foreordained
before the foundation of the world, delivered us from death by
His death and blood. Gen. 3:15; I Peter 1:19, 20. And when the
fullness of the time was come, He became man, and was born of
the virgin Mary, as had been prophesied concerning Him, in
these words, "Unto us a child is born, unto us a son is given."
Isa. 9:6. And again, "A virgin shall conceive, and bear a son."
7:14. Thus, through the power of the Most High He was conceived
in Mary of the Holy Ghost, even as the angel said to her, "The
Holy Ghost shall come upon thee, and the power of the Highest
shall overshadow thee." Luke 1:35. To Joseph he said, "That
which is conceived in her is of the Holy Ghost: therefore also
that holy thing which shall be born of her shall be called the
Son of God." Matt. 1:20. For the Word which was with God in the
beginning became flesh, and dwelt among men, visibly and
tangibly, so that also His glory was seen, a glory as of the
only begotten of the Father, full of grace and truth. He
humbled Himself, and took upon Himself the form of a servant,
became as another man,</p>

</div><div id="806"> 

<p>and was found in fashion as a man. Phil. 2:7, 8. And all
that He saw and heard of His Father He taught and made known to
us, and was obedient to His Father unto death; for He was
innocently sentenced by Pilate, was crucified, died, and was
buried, and the third day rose from the dead. And after His
resurrection He commanded His disciples to preach the Gospel to
every creature, and to baptize believers in the name of the
Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost. And He ascended up to
heaven, and sitteth at the right hand of the Father, from
whence He shall come again, in the glory of His Father, and in
the clouds of heaven, to judge the quick and the dead. Matt.
28:19; Luke 24:51; Rev. 1:7.</p>

<p>4. I further believe and confess, that there is a Holy
Ghost, which proceeds from the Father, and is poured out,
through Christ Jesus, upon the believing and regenerated
children, as is written in Tit. 3 and Eph. 1, as an earnest of
the Spirit, and as an assurance of the mind; by which Spirit
the), cry,"Abba, Father." Rom. 8:15. By this Spirit they are
guided into all truth, since He is also their teacher. John
16:13. By the same Spirit the prophets prophesied, since God
through Him distributes the spiritual gifts to believers, for
the profiting of all. -Hence the apostle writes, "There are
diversities of gifts, but the same Spirit. And there are
differences of administrations, but the same Lord. And there
are diversities of operations, but it is the same God which
worketh all in all." I Corinthians 12:4-6. These three names
are one true God. The Father is the Creator, who created
everything by the Son, or His Word; and by His Spirit He has
also renewed all things, and has purified believers by the Son,
and by the Holy Ghost; in which three names the apostles were
commanded to baptize believers. For there are three that bear
record in heaven, the Father, the Word, and the Holy Ghost: and
these three are one. I John 5:7.</p>

<p>5. I further believe and confess, that there is a holy
Christian church, which is the communion of the saints, and the
assembly of the believing and righteous, which is the temple of
the living God, the pillar and solid ground of the truth, and
the city of God in the Spirit. I Cor. 12:13; I Timothy 3:15.
And in this temple the Holy Ghost is the teacher, and the
apostles the laborers, who first built this temple. I Cor. 3:9.
As Solomon, when he wanted to build his temple, sent out his
servants, to hew out the stones from a mountain; and the stones
having been hewed, when they were brought to the work, they
joined them together, so that there was neither hammer nor axe
nor any tool of iron heard in the house, while it was in
building; so Christ sent out His apostles, to teach men, and to
preach repentance in His name, before they were to be baptized;
for they had to be regenerated with the hammer of the divine
Word, and by the incorruptible seed of God the Father, who is a
mountain and rock forever, if they were to be a living stone in
thetemple of God. I Kings 5:17; 6:7; Dan. 2:45. Thus the
apostles, as wise builders, first built the temple, and laid
the foundation. Hence Paul says, that God has set in the church
first apostles, secondarily prophets, thirdly teachers. I Cor.
12:28. In another place he says, "He set some, apostles; and
some, prophets; and some, evangelists; and some pastors and
teachers; for the perfecting of the saints, for the work of the
ministry, for the edifying of the body of Christ; till we all
come in the unity of the faith, and of the knowledge of the Son
of God, unto a perfect man, unto the measure of the stature of
the fullness of Christ." For as a body which has many members,
and yet is but one body, so also, though there are many
believers, there is nevertheless but one body, of which Christ
is the head. For Paul writes, "By one Spirit are we all baptized
into one body . . . and have been made to drink into one
Spirit." I Corinthians 12:13. And all that are in this temple
or city have Christ for their Lord and King; Him they must
obey; they must suffer Him to rule over them, and to bear
dominion with the sceptre of His kingdom, namely, with His
Spirit and Word; for to Him all power is given in heaven and in
earth. Matthew 28:18. The Father judgeth no man, but bath
committed all judgment unto the Son: that all men should honor
the Son, even as though they honor the Father. He that honoreth
not the Son honoreth not the Father which bath sent Him. And as
the Father bath life in Himself; so bath He given to the Son to
have life in Himself. John 5:22. 23, 26. He that bath the Son
of God bath eternal life; and he that bath not the Son of God
bath not life. But this church has forgiveness of sins through
Him; for they believe in Him, and seek their salvation in Him
alone, for there is none other name given them under heaven,
whereby they can be saved, than by the name of Christ; for He
is made unto them, of God, wisdom, and righteousness, and
sanctification, and redemption. Acts 4:12; I Cor. 1:30. And He
gave Himself for them, that He might redeem them from all
iniquity, and purify unto Himself a peculiar neople, zealous of
good works. Tit. 2:14. These have one Lord, one faith, one
baptism, one God for their Father, and one Holy Spirit, upon
whom and through whom the temple is built and founded. Eph.
4:5, 6.</p>

<p>6. I further believe and confess a Christian baptism,
according to the import of the Word of God, as Christ commanded
His apostles, saying, "Go and teach all nations, baptizing them in the name of the
Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost: teaching them to
observe all things whatsoever I have commanded you." Matt.
28:19, 20. And Mark 16:15,16, "Go ye into all the world, and
preach the gospel to every creature. He that believeth and is
bantized shall be saved, but he that believeth not shall be
damned." Thus the apostles did according to the command of
their Lord; for on the day of Pentecost Peter opened his mouth,
and taught the people of Jerusalem, and</p>

</div><div id="807"> 

<p>reproved them of their sins, so that they said, "Men and
brethren, what shall we do? Then Peter said unto them, Repent,
and be, baptized every one of you in the name of Jesus Christ
for the remission of sins, and ye shall receive the gift of the
Holy Ghost. For the promise is unto you, and to your children,
and .to all that are afar off, even as many as the Lord our God
shall call." Acts 2:3739.</p>

<p>Hereby the apostle proves, that the gift of the Holy Ghost
should be given not only to the Jews and their children, but
also to the Gentiles, who were far from the kingdom of God, but
whom God should also call to it, as the prophet Joel had
foretold, that God in the latter days should pour out His
Spirit upon all flesh. Joel 2:28. Hence God poured out the Holy
Spirit upon the Gentile Cornelius and his household (Acts
10:44), in order to convince Peter and his [other] apostles,
that He had given power to all men by faith, to become children
of God; for with such He would establish His covenant. Hence
Peter commanded; that they should be baptized in the name of
the Lord; for they had been baptized by Christ with the Holy
Ghost and with fire; by which Holy Ghost He purged their hearts
from dead works, to serve the living God. Hence Peter said to
those of Jerusalem, "Repent and be baptized every one of you in
the name of Jesus Christ for the remission of sins." Not as
though sin could be forgiven through baptism, as may be seen in
the case of Simon the sorcerer, who had also been baptized by
Philip, but Peter said that he should have neither part nor lot
in this matter. Acts 8:21. But they are cleansed from sin
through faith in Christ Jesus, in whose name they receive
baptism; hence baptism is a sign by which something better is
signified; therefore it must be received upon or through faith,
for Peter says, "The like figure whereunto even baptism doth
also now save us, (not the putting away of the filth of the
flesh, but the answer of a good conscience toward God), by the
resurrection of Jesus Christ: who is gone into heaven, and is
on the right hand of God." I Peter 3:21, 22. Therefore Philip,
according to the command of Christ, first taught those of
Samaria, before they received baptism. Also many Corinthians
that heard it, believed and were baptized. Thus baptism must be
received upon faith, for the burying of sin (Rom. 6:4), for a
washing of regeneration (Tit. 3:5), for a covenant of the
Christian life, for a putting on of the body of Christ, for an
ingrafting into the true olive tree and vine Christ, for an
entrance into the spiritual ark of Noah (I Peter 3:20), of
which Christ is the true householder, as is written concerning
Him, "Behold I and the children which God hath given me." Heb.
2:13. And Isaiah calls him, The mighty God, The everlasting
Father, The Prince of Peace. Isa. 9:6. Thus they are baptized
by Christ inwardly with the Holy Ghost and with fire, outwardly
with water, as the eunuch said, "Here is water; what doth hinder
me to be baptized? And Philip said, If thou believest with all
thine heart,thou mayest. And he answered and said, I believe
that Jesus Christ is the Son of God." Acts 8:36, 37.</p>

<p>Thus the true Christian baptism must be received according
to the command of Christ, and the practice of the apostles, in
the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost,
for the burying of sin, to walk with Christ in newness of life,
and that we henceforth should serve sin no more.</p>

<p>7. I further confess a true Supper, a breaking of bread,
which Christ Himself instituted, and observed with His
apostles, with bread and wine. The same night in which He was
betrayed, He took bread, gave thanks, brake it, and said,"Take,
eat; this is my body, which is broken for you: this do in
remembrance of me. After the same Tanner also he took the cup,
when he had supped, saying, This cup is the new'testament in my
blood: This do ye, as oft as ye drink it, in remembrance of
me." I Corinthians 11:23-25. From this no one is to understand,
that the bread was the body itself of Christ, because He calls
it His body; else we must also understand, that the cup is His
testament, since He calls the cup His testament. But now they
are only memorials, by which His death and the testament (which
is sprinkled with His blood) are to be remembered;.for where a
testament is, there must also of necessity be the death of the
testator . . . otherwise it is of no strength at all while the
testator liveth. Hebrews 9:16, 17. Hence Christ confirmed with
His death His testament which He made with the house of Israel;
and suffered His blood to be shed for many for the remission of
sins. Matt. 26:28. And for such a remembrance the bread is
broken, and the wine drunk, in the church, as Christ said, "This
do in-.remembrance of me." For as the bread is broken in the
church, so also was the body of Christ broken on the tree of
the cross; and as no one is fed by this bread, but those who
eat of it, so also no one is fed, according to the soul, by
Christ, who is the bread of life, except those that believe in
Him. Therefore Judas could not receive Christ, though he ate of
the bread; for no one has a right to the breaking of bread,
except those who by faith have become partakers of Christ, and
one bread with Him; and no one has a right to drink out of the
cup, save he that is become a child of the new testament (which
is sprinkled with the blood of Christ, I Peter 1:2), and he
must have the law of the Lord written in his heart, and the
Lord must have become his God, so that He will remember his
sins no more. Jeremiah 31:33, 34. For if we are to use a
memorial, we must have that which is to be remembered by it.
Hence the apostle says, "Let every one examine himself, and so
let him eat of that bread, and drink of that cup. For he that
eateth and drinketh unworthilv, eateth and drinketh judgment to
himself, not discerning the Lord's body" (T Cor. 11:28, 29);
for we must discern for whom the Lord gave His body. Hence,
Christians, or those that would</p>

</div><div id="808"> 

<p>be called so, must examine themselves, whether they also
have a right to the bread, for it represents much to them,
since it becomes to them as a mirror. For it is one bread baked
of many grains, which must be alike among one another, because
they are ground, made into a dough with water, and baked with
fire into one bread, so that it cannot be distinguished which
was the smallest or the largest grain. Thus must we also be
broken in heart, by the hammer of the divine Word (Jer. 23:29),
being united together through the communion of the Holy Ghost;
and through fervent love be in union and peace with one
another, and do nothing through strife or vain glory, but each
esteem other better than themselves. Phil. 2:3. They that have
thus become one bread with Christ have a right to the breaking
of bread, and may receive it in remembrance of Him, for, for
such a people He gave His body; they may drink out of the cup,
for they are cleansed by His blood, and have by faith obtained
that which is signified by the wine. I Peter 1:19. Hence Paul
writes, "The cup of blessing which we bless, is it not the
communion of the blood of Christ? The bread which we break, is
it not the communion of the body of Christ? For we being many
are one bread, and one body; for we are all partakers of that
one bread. Behold Israel after the flesh: are not they which
eat of the sacrifices partakers of the altar?" I Cor. 10:16-18.
For as Aaron and his children ate the sacrifice, and no
strangers might eat thereof, so no one has a right to the
breaking of bread and the drinking of the cup, save only the
true, regenerated children of God, who are inwardly baptized by
Christ with the Holy Ghost and with fire, and outwardly with
water, upon their faith, and are thus become one bread and body
with Christ. And as the children of Israel had to eat the
paschal lamb with unleavened bread, so also the Supper of the
Lord must be observed by an unleavened people, who have purged
out the old leaven, and are become a new lump, or they observe
it to their condemnation. I Cor. 5:7.</p>

<p>Thus the bread is not His body, though Christ so calls it;
but it is a memorial of His body, which He has given for us.
For Christ said to His disciples, "He that receiveth you
receiveth me." Matt. 10:40. And He also says, "Whosoever shall
receive such a child in my name receiveth me." Luke 9:48. These
words must not be so understood, that they receive Christ
bodily; but they that received such a child or His disciples,
did virtually as much as though they.had received Christ; for
they were His messengers, and they received them in His name.
Paul also says that the Israelites drank of that spiritual Rock
that followed them, which Rock was Christ (I Cor. 10:4); though
Moses with his rod did not smite Christ, but a stone, which
signified Christ (Ex. 17:6). For as through the smiting with
Moses' rod water ran out of the stone, so that the Israelites
drank; so God the Father by His power caused the water of eter
al life to flow, to give drink to the spiritual Israelites;
hence he says, "Which Rock was Christ." They also, he says, did
eat the same spiritual meat; though they yet ate only the
figurative heavenly bread in the wilderness; but God gave us
the true bread from heaven (John 6:50), which is Christ, of
which the bread which the Israelites ate was a figure.
Therefore Paul writes, "They did all eat the same spiritual
meat." I Cor. 10:3. Christ and His apostles were wont to call
the signs and figures as though they were the substance, as in
the case of the two wives (Gal. 4:24): Which things are an
allegory; for these are the two covenants; though the wives
were not the covenants, but they signify the covenants.</p>

<p>So one is also not to understand, that the bread is the body
of Christ; else the cup must also be the testament, and the
wine His blood, which is not so, but they are only symbols by
which His body, and His blood, which was shed on the tree of
the cross, are to be remembered. Hence Christ says, "This do in
remembrance of me."</p>

<p>8. I further also confess a Christian excommunication, or
exclusion from the church, which Christ and His apostles
themselves ordained and instituted, and this in a twofold
manner. In the first place, Christ said to Peter and His other
apostles, "Whatsoever ye shall bind on earth shall be bound in heaven;
and whatsoever ye shall loose on earth shall be loosed in
heaven." Matt. 18:18. For He previously says, "I will give unto
thee the keys of the kingdom of heaven." 16:19. And He also
says to His disciples, "Peace be unto you: as my Father hath
sent me, even so send I you. [And when he had said this], he
breathed on them, and said unto them, Receive ye the Holy
Ghost: whosesoever sins ye remit, they are remitted unto them;
and whosesoever sins ye retain, they are retained." John 20:
21-23. From this no one is to understand, that Christ gave the
apostles such power that they might govern the kingdom
according to their will. God forbid; but He appointed unto them
the kingdom, as it had been appointed to Him by His Father;
that they should govern it according to His will. Hence He made
them vicegerents, because He could not remain with them. As the
King of Spain, when he wished to travel out of his dominion, he
appointed vicegerents in his place, that they should govern the
people according to his will; however, he does not make them
lords over it, but he commits to them his laws, decrees and
mandates. Hence, whatever they have bound or loosed here in
this country, that is, what they have judged, must stand before
the king, as far as they have judged according to his laws and
customs; or he would not be a true king. Thus Christ also gave
His apostles a rule, after which they were to govern
themselves; and He, moreover, gave them His Spirit, in order
that they might fully expound it to the church. Hence Christ
said to them, "And if thy hand offend thee, cut it off: it is
better for thee to enter into life maimed, than having two
hands to go into</p>

</div><div id="809"> 

<p>hell, into the fire that never shall be quenched." The same
He also says with regard to the feet and the eyes. Mark 9:43.
Now as among them of Corinth there was such an offensive
member, who had his father's wife, Paul determined with his
spirit and with the power of Christ, when they were gathered
together, to deliver him to Satan, for the destruction of the
flesh, that the spirit might be saved. I Cor. 5:1. Hence, that
which Paul bound on earth was bound in heaven, for he did it
with the power of Christ; for this was the power which they had
received, to cut off such offensive members, and to purge out
that old leaven, that they might be a new lump. Hence he writes
to the Thessalonians, "Now we command you, brethren, in the name
of our Lord Jesus Christ, that ye withdraw yourselves from
every brother that walketh disorderly, and not after the
tradition which he received of us." II Thess. 3:6. For the dead
may not remain among the living, lest their offensive smell be
imparted to them, and they also become unclean; hence one is to
withdraw himself from all unclean brethren and sisters. The
apostle also writes, "A man that is a heretic, after the first
and second admonition, reject; knowing that he that is such is
subverted, and sinneth, being condemned of himself." Tit. 3:10,
11; Rom. 16:17. Such are to be- avoidedfor they cause
contention and offenses-that the church may not be corrupted by
their false doctrine. Hence we are to have nothing to do with
those who are excommunicated from the church (I Cor. 5:11),
that we may not defile ourselves with them; in the second
place, that they may be ashamed and repent (II Thess.-3:14),
for it is a punishment for amendment, and not for destruction.
Not as Israel's excommunication which was done by death (Deut.
13:5); but we are to withdraw ourselves from all [such]
brethren or sisters without regard of person; for as Moses with
his severe, deadly excommunication did not make a distinction
of persons, so Christ makes no distinction with His
excommunication, which tends to amendment. Hence the apostle
writes, "I have written unto you not to keep company, if any man
that is called a brother be a fornicator, or covetous, or an
idolater, or a railer, or a drunkard, or an extortioner; with
such a one no not to eat." I Cor. 5:11.</p>

<p>In the second place it is written, Matt. 18, where He
[Christ] gives them the keys. If thy brother shall trespass
against thee (here He does not speak of offensive members, whom
He would have cut off, as is written in the same chapter; for
He says): go and tell him his fault between thee and him alone;
if he shall hear thee, thou hast gained thy brother (that is,
if he confesses his guilt, you are to forgive him, for it is
not a deadly matter for which God has excommunicated him; hence
you are to forgive him, even as God daily forgives you through
Christ. (Eph. 4:32). But if he will not hear thee, then take
with thee one or two more, that in the mouth of two or three
witnesses every wordmay be established. And if he shall neglect
to hear them, tell it unto the church: but if he neglect to
hear the church, let him be unto thee as a heathen man and a
publican,(which heathen and publicans were excluded from the
covenant of the Lord). Lev. 19:17; Deut. 17:6. From this we may
perceive, that this is spoken of sins that may be adjusted
between brother and brother, and concerning which the apostles
had received no binding keys, except after the third
admonition, and then he is not punished for the sin, though the
sin is the cause, but for his disobedience. Then said
Peter, "Lord, how oft shall my brother sin against me, and I
forgive him? till seven times?" Christ said, "I say not unto
thee, Until seven times: but, Until seventy times seven;" that
is, as often as brethren sin against one another, they are to
forgive one another, whether the sin consist in words or in
works upon which excommunication is not pronounced by the
Scriptures. For this is the key with which everything must be
locked and unlocked, bound and loosed, or it will not stand in
heaven. O my dear brethren, take good heed, that it be always
used rightly, and it shall redound much to your peace.</p>

<p>9. Lastly I believe in and confess a resurrection of the
dead, both of the just and of the unjust. For as by one man
death came upon all men, so also by one man the resurrection of
the dead comes upon all men. Rom. 5:12. As in Adam we all die,
even so in Christ we all are made alive (I Cor. 15:21);
everyone in his order, for many that sleep in the dust of the
earth shall wake, some to everlasting life, and some to shame
and everlasting contempt. Dan. 12:2. For the dead that are in
the grave shall hear the voice of Christ, and shall come forth;
they that have done good, unto the resurrection of life; and
they that have done evil, unto the resurrection of damnation.
John 5:28, 29. For their faces shall be blacker than darkness,
and they shall be greatly terrified and sigh for anguish of
spirit; for they shall all be placed before the judgment seat
of Christ, and shall there receive according to that they have
done. II Cor. 5:10; Jer. 17:10. Then they shall say to the
mountains, "Come and cover us, that we see not the face of him
that sitteth on the throne." Hosea 10:8; Rev. 6:16. Then they
shall begin to creep into the holes of bats, and to hide
themselves in the clefts of the rocks from the terrible majesty
of the Lord. Isa. 2:20, 21. But it will not be possible; for he
shall come in the clouds, and every eye shall see him, and they
shall then know whom they have pierced. Matt. 24:30; Zech.
12:10; Rev. 1:7. And they shall see the righteous stand in
great boldness, and shall say, "These are they whom we sometimes had in derision; we fools
accounted their life madness: How are they now numbered among
the children of God, and their lot is among the saints!" Wisd.
5:3. Then shall they fear that terrible sentence; then Christ
shall say, "Depart ye cursed, into everlasting fire, prepared
for the devil and his angels."</p>

</div><div id="810"> 

<p>Matt. 25:41. But the righteous shall shine above the stars,
yea, as the sun, in the throne of their Father, and shall be
clothed in white raiment, and fed with the hidden heavenly
bread, and eat of the tree of life, which is in the midst of
the paradise of God. Then they shall hunger no more, neither
thirst any more; for the Lamb shall lead them unto the fountain
of living water; and then they shall inherit all things, for
they have overcome. Dan. 12:3; Matt. 13:43; Rev. 2:7; Isa.
49:10; Rev. 7:17.</p>

<p>Behold, how glorious they shall be that are accounted worthy
for the resurrection of the just; for this corruptible shall
put on incorruption, and this mortal immortality. Now it is
sown in corruption, it is raised in incorruption: it is sown in
dishonor, it is raised in glory: it is sown in weakness, it is
raised in power: it is sown a natural body, it is raised a
spiritual body. I Cor. 15:53, 42-44. And Isaiah says, "But,
Lord, thy dead shall live, and arise with their bodies." Isa.
26:19,* Job says, "I know, that my Redeemer liveth, who shall
hereafter raise me up from the earth. This my skin shall
encompass me, and in my flesh shall I see God; mine eyes shall
behold him and not another."t Job 19:25. Then shall the mortal
clothing be put off, and the immortal put on; then shall they
have palms in their hands, and a crown on their heads, and
shall live forever; then shall they sit with Christ on twelve
thrones, and judge the twelve tribes of Israel; then shall they
stand in great boldness before the face of them that afflicted
them; then shall the bride have her Bridegroom, Jesus Christ;
then shall she hear His beloved voice, "Come, ye blessed,
inherit the kingdom of my Father, prepared for you from the
foundation of the world." II Esd. 2:45; Matt. 19:28; Wisd. 5:1;
Matthew 25:34. Thus I confess a resurrection of the flesh, a
righteous judgment, and an eternal life. Amen.</p>

<p>See, my dear children, here I have briefly set forth to you
in writing my faith, that you may know, in what faith your
father died; and I hope that it may serve for your instruction,
and that you may be induced the more to follow the same; the
Lord grant you His grace, that this may be accomplished.</p>

<p>Herewith I will commend my dear wife and children to the
Lord; may He help and bless you by His Spirit, that you may all
grow up in wisdom, holiness and righteousness: this I wish you
with all my heart. When we are to die, I do not know.</p>

<p>Finished in the year 1569, in May, in my prison, at Bruges,
by me, JACOB DE RoosE, or the chandler.</p>

<p class="c27">Alle die liiden na den wille Godts, wilt
hierop</p>

<p class="c27">mercken,</p>

<p class="c27">Die bevelen haer Zielen den getrouwen
Shepcent;er</p>

<p class="c27">met goede Wereken.</p>

<p class="c5">I Pet. 4:19.</p>

<p class="c8">* See German version</p>

<p class="c8">** See preceding note.</p>

<h1>ANOTHER LETTER OF JACOB THE CHANDLER WRITTEN IN PRISON AND SENT TO POUWEL VAN MEENEN, ONE OF HIS FELLOW MINISTERS IN THE GOSPEL OF CHRIST, IN ANSWER TO A LETTER WHICH HE HAD RECEIVED FROM HIM</h1> 

<p>The eternal, incomprehensible God, who is alone wise, grant
you His grace, mercy, and peace, through our Lord Jesus Christ,
and fill you with all wisdom, knowledge and understanding,
through the Holy Ghost, that you may walk worthily before God,
to do His will, to the praise of His holy name, to the
edification of His church, and to the salvation of your soul;
this I wish, my much beloved and very dear brother Pouwel, as a
friendly greeting and for a parting farewell.</p>

<p>After all proper greetings, I inform you, my dear brother,
that I understood from your letter, that you request of me,
that I should write to you, for a remembrance, concerning all
the articles of faith; which I would willingly do for your
sake, but I do not think that I shall have the time. In the
second place, I understood, that after the writing of the first
letter you saw the articles of faith which I briefly wrote to
my children.</p>

<p>In the third place, I understand from the little note which
you wrote subsequently, that you particularly desire to know my
views as to what is to be done with persons who will not avoid
those whom the church has excommunicated according to the
Scriptures, and are not willing to confess to guilt in the
matter. I am greatly astonished that this spirit also manifests
itself; but I fear that he is different in his nature from what
he pretends to be; for the avoidance is very much in the way of
Satan, yet the apostle teaches that it is a good means to make
the excommunicated ashamed, that is, to bring him to humility
or repentance. II Thess. 3: 14. But now I hear that the defect
in regard to this avoiding lies chiefly, not with those that
are avoided, but with those that should avoid. From this it is
quite evident, that the reason why they will not avoid, lies
with them, and not with those that are avoided, which also
appears so to me, since I have noticed and feared that there
was a covetous, selfseeking spirit with many, so that the mind
was far more exercised in temporal business, traffic, and the
like, than in godliness; yea, that they sought more to lay up
treasures on earth, than in heaven. And this avoidance is often
greatly in the way of this spirit, for it inconveniences him
sometimes in his business; hence one begins to consider,
whether this cannot be set aside, and this with Scripture; for
this spirit is of such a nature, that he does not like to make
himself known; but he seeks to cover himself with the cloak of
righteousness. He is also not reproved much in the church, or
if he is to be reproved, he must be called by another name; for
he is sometimes reproved as a heretic, sometimes as a juggler,
sometimes as an idolater. And this is</p>

</div><div id="811"> 

<p>the reason, that he can conceal himself so well, but yet
manifests his nature in this wise; for wherever he goes he does
not go to be idle. Hence the apostle writes, "The love of money
is the root of all evil." I Tim. 6:10.</p>

<p>The apostle further writes, "Now we command you, brethren, in
the name of our Lord Jesus Christ, that ye withdraw yourselves
from every brother that walketh disorderly, and not after the
tradition which he received from us." II Thess. 3:6. And he
further writes, "If any man obey- not our word, signify that man
by an epistle, and have no company with him, that he may be
ashamed. Yet count him not as an enemy, but admonish him as a
brother." II Thess. 3:14, 15. With this the apostle indicates,
that the church is as much bound, to have nothing to do with
the disobedient, as she is bound to withdraw herself from such
. as walk disorderly, even though the word <i>withdraw</i>
might be understood only with reference to excommunication; for
as the church must withdraw herself, lest she should be
leavened or defiled by such persons, so she must have nothing
to do with them, that they may be ashamed. Again, the church
defiles herself, when she does not avoid, since this is
commanded and taught her by the apostle, for he taught this,
that it should be done, as may be perceived in his epistle to
the Corinthians;..for he writes, "I wrote unto you in an epistle
not to company with fornicators." I Cor. 5:9. From this it
seems that he had written them before that time; but as they
did not observe it, he explained it to them more fully, for he
says, "Yet not altogether with the fornicators of this world; or
with the covetous, or extortioners or with idolaters; for
then must ye needs go out of the world. But I. have written
unto you, not to keep company with these." See, he says
again, "I have written unto you."</p>

<p>From this it can well be seen, that he repeats it, in order
that they should observe it better, than they had done before;
for they did also not observe excommunication, because they
could not avoid; for where no excommunication is, there is also
no avoidance, for avoidance springs from excommunication. Hence
he reproved them as being puffed up, and that they did not
mourn that such heinous deeds were committed among them; and
determined concerning him that had done this deed, in the name
of the Lord Jesus Christ, when they were gathered together,
with His spirit, and with the power of our Lord Jesus Christ,
to deliver him unto Satan for the destruction of the flesh,
that the spirit might be saved in the day of our Lord Jesus.
Hence it is evident from this, that for whatever
excommunication is good, avoidance is also good, and that they
serve the same purpose. For the apostle says, that he delivered
him to Satan for the destruction of the flesh, that is, for the
mortification of the flesh; and concerning avoidance he
says, "And have no company with him, that he may be ashamed."
Mark, for what this shame serves; for it serves a woman to wash
herself when she is toldthat she is begrimed; a man, also, that
is disrobed, does not want to be seen in his nakedness, for he
is ashamed; hence, when someone comes that would see him, he
immediately puts on his clothes, that he should not be seen in
his nakedness. As Adam, when he knew that he was naked, he
forthwith sought to cover himself, for he was ashamed; and he
made an apron of fig leaves, to cover his shame. Now we must,
according to the words of the apostle, avoid the
excommunicated, that they may become ashamed; for if we
withdraw ourselves from them, and avoid them, they have cause
to consider why this is done, and through this considering to
know . their nakedness; and become ashamed before the Lord
their God, against whom they have sinned, and are thus smitten
in their conscience, so that in this condition they dare not
appear before the Lord, and hence seek a means to cover their
nakedness, but not with fig leaves, as did Adam, .but with the
skin of the Lamb Christ Jesus, who must be received through
faith with a broken and contrite heart. As Adam, when he
humbled himself, God put a coat of skins on him, to cover his
nakedness. Thus, dear brother, excommunication and avoidance
have the same purpose, and they .are not contrary to each
other; hence the apostle says, "Yet count him not as an enemy,
but admonish him as a brother." Admonition is not contrary to
avoidance, for admonition serves to amendment, even as
avoidance and excommunication serve to it. Hence the apostle
does not prohibit it, but teaches that they are to be
admonished as brethren; for all that is not contrary to them,
namely, excommunication and avoidance, they do not prohibit;
but where excommunication is, there must also be avoidance, for
it proceeds froth excommunication. Hence, when he wrote to the
Corinthians, how they should deliver the fornicator to Satan,
and purge out the old leaven, he also wrote to them, "But now I
have written unto you not to keep company, if any man that it
called a brother, be a fornicator, or covetous, or an idolater,
or a railer, or a drunkard, or an extortioner; with such a one
no not to eat. For what have I to do to judge them also that
are without?" Mark, he says, <i>judge;</i> yet he had not
written anything from which they might have understood, that
the world should be excommunicated; but he had written that
they should have no company with fornicators; and m order that
they should not understand it with reference to the fornicators
of the world, that one should have no company with them, he
says, "Yet not altogether with the fornicators of this world, or
with the covetous; for then must ye needs go out of the world.
For what have I to do to judge them also that are without?"
See, he calls it judging, that, as he said, one should have no
company with them; although avoidance is not excommunication or
the judgment itself, but it confirms the judgment; for when I
say: You must have nothing to do with that man, I thereby
declare that he is excommunicated, and all that avoid him</p>

</div><div id="812"> 

<p>show that he is judged. Hence he says, "Do not ye judge them
that are within? But them that are without God judgeth.
Therefore put away from among yourselves that wicked
person."</p>

<p>From this we can well perceive, that avoidance is as well
founded in the Scriptures as excommunication; hence those who
now reject avoidance, reject the Scriptures, since it is
founded in the Scriptures. Therefore, they that will not avoid,
sin, not against men, but against the Lord; hence the church
may not tolerate such, who so sin against the Lord, and will
not confess to guilt; for they are servants of the Lord, to
punish all disobedience.</p>

<p>ow we perceive, in the first place from the words of Christ
(Matt. 18:15 ), that if any one sins against his neighbor, by
any transgression, he must be reconciled to his neighbor, or he
cannot, after sufficient admonition, remain a brother, but he
must be regarded as a heathen man or publican, who was excluded
from the covenant of the Lord, and with whom the Jews would
have no fellowship. John 4:9. And since they must be regarded
as persons that are excluded from the covenant of the Lord,
because they have only through weakness sinned against their
neighbor, and will not confess to guilt; how much more shall
they be regarded so who sin against the Lord, and transgress
His doctrine-which is frequently done through heedlessness, or
self-interest, or for the sake of friends or relatives-and yet
will not become reconciled to the Lord?</p>

<p>In the second place Moses writes, that if any one touched a
dead body, and would not wash himself the third and the seventh
day, he was to be cut off. Yet the dead had to be touched, for
they must be buried; and yet, if they would not wash
themselves, they had to be cut off; and the priest might not
defile himself with any dead person; he was not allowed to go
to any dead, for he had the anointing oil on his head. Num.
19:11; Lev. 21:1; 8:12; EX. 19:10. Hence, if they in Israel had
to be so punished who would not wash themselves with water from
a pollution'which was caused by necessity how shall they now be
tolerated in the church, who without necessity, yea, often for
the sake of gain, or through the prompting of flesh and blood,
defile themselves with these dead, after they have been
separated from the church, and yet will not wash themselves, or
bear or confess their guilt? These people may not thus be
tolerated, according to the view which I have from the
Scriptures: and if they are allowed to go unreproved, it must
be declared as a liberty, and then perhaps tomorrow already
another will arise and demand the abolishment of
excommunication, and will prove to you, that you have just as
much power to maintain avoidance, as you have to maintain
excommunication; and then you will be beaten with your own
staff, and thus the hedge will be completely broken down, and
the wild boars will run into the vineyard of the Lord, and root
it up. Ps. 80:13; Isa. 5:5. 0 dear brother, take heed; blow the
trumpet onMount Zion; let Israel hear the word of the Lord;
reprove, rebuke, exhort with all longsuffering. Joel 2:1; II
Tim. 4:2.</p>

<p>With the simple that are led astray in understanding, deal
in a fatherly, longsuffering manner, if .God may haply yet
enlighten them by His Spirit. Bind up the wounded; seek the
erring; break not the bruised reed, nor quench the smoking
flax. Isa. 61:1; Luke 10:34; 15:4; Isa. 42:3. Always take heed
unto yourselves, and to the flock, over which the Holy Ghost
hath made you overseers, to feed the church of God, which He
hath purchased with His own blood. Acts 20:28. Hence feed the
flock of Christ not by constraint, but willingly (I Pet. 5:2),
and remember that the apostle says, "Woe is unto me, if I preach
not the gospel! For if I do this thing willingly, I have a
reward; but if against my will, a dispensation of the Gospel is
committed unto me." I Cor. 9:16, 17. Hence he also says, "Though
we might have used authority, as the apostles of Christ, we
were gentle among you, even as a nurse cherisheth her children;
so being affectionately desirous of you, we were willing to
have imparted unto you, not the gospel of God only, but also
our own souls, because ye were dear unto us. I Thessalonians
2:6-8. And he said, that as a father admonishes his children,
so he had exhorted, comforted, and charged them, that they
should walk worthy of God. vv. 11, 12; Phil. 1: 27; Col.
1:10.</p>

<p>Thus, my dear brother, take heed to your sheep, and tend to
your flock with a ready mind, and, when the chief Shepherd
shall appear ye shall receive a crown of glory that fadeth not
away. I Peter 5:4; Jas. 1:12. Thus, my dear brother, be
watchful, and do the work of a true preacher; make full proof
of thy ministry (II Tim. 4:5) and say like the prophet, "For
Zion's sake will I rtot hold my peace and for Jerusalem's sake
I will not rest, until the righteousness thereof go forth as
brightness, and the salvation thereof as a lamp that burneth."
Isa. 62:1. Be on your guard, and watch over their souls, as one
that must give an account thereof. Heb. 13:17. If you see the
sword coming, blow the trumpet, and warn the people in the name
of the Lord, that the drowsy may awake, and the feeble knees
make straight paths, and the hands which hang down be lifted
up, and you be free of their blood. Hebrews 13:17; Ezek. 3:19,
21; 33:3; Heb. 12:12, 13. To this end may the Lord grant you
His grace, and strengthen you by His Spirit, that you may
receive the end of your faith, even the salvation of your soul.
Amen.</p>

<p>I pray you, dear brother, receive my brief exhortation in
good part, for it has been written out of love; and here you
have my simple views with regard to avoidance, and briefly what
is to be done with those who do not avoid, and will not confess
to guilt. I should have written more fully concerning it, but
there was no good opportunity. Herewith I will commend my dear
and much beloved brother, whom I love with all my heart, and
his</p>

</div><div id="813"> 

<p>dear wife, to the Lord and to the Word of His grace. Pray
the Lord for us. I thank you heartily for what you sent me;
thank Peter very much in my name, this I ask of you. Written on
the 17th and 18th of May by me, JACOB DE Room</p>

<p>I wish that you would send a copy of this letter to one of
the ministers at Armentiers, or to my wife for this is my
desire. Dear brother Pouwel, if you desire anything further,
and I have the time, I am at your service, though there is
little to be obtained from me. Greet your ministers very much
in my name, and all them that fear and love God, where it is
convenient.</p>

<p class="c27">Alle die lijden na den wille Godts, wilt
hierop</p>

<p class="c27">mercken,</p>

<p class="c27">Die bevelen haer Zielen den getrouwen
Schepper</p>

<p class="c27">met goede Wercken.</p>

<p class="c5">I Pet. 4:19.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER LETTER OF JACOB THE CHANDLER,<br />
WRITTEN IN PRISON</h2> 

<p>I, Jacob, imprisoned for the Lord's sake, wish my dear
brother much grace, mercy and peace, from God our Father, and
the Lord Jesus Christ, and that He would strengthen and
enlighten you by His Spirit, according to His pleasure, to the
revelation of His knowledge, that you may do His will, so that
you, according to the true judgment of God, may be found worthy
for His kingdom, through Jesus Christ, to whom be praise
forever and ever. Amen. Eph. 3:1; II Tim. 1:8; Eph. 3:16; Rom.
16:27.</p>

<p>Very dear and in God beloved brother, as I have remembered
by writing many of the God-fearing, I can finally not forget to
write a little to you in token of the good fellowship which we
had together for a time, in Christ Jesus, through faith, but
which must now for the Lord's sake be broken and severed. For,
as a wife must, for the husband's sake, leave all good
acquaintance and fellowship which she has besides her husband,
and go with him where he pleases, so we must also for the
Lord's sake, forsake all good acquaintance and fellowship which
we aside from the Lord have with any person and this through
faith in and love to Christ Jesus; for we have not seen Him
with our bodily eyes (I Pet. 1:8); hence it is evident that it
must be done by faith. For if we love a thing because we see
it, it is not done by faith, for this love results from sight,
but if we love a thing for what we hear of it, love arises
through faith in what we hear of it. As Rebecca, though she did
not know Isaac, and, as may be perceived from the Scriptures,
had never seen him, yet she, through the words of Abraham's
servant, so loved him that for his sake she left all that she
had in Syria and went to meet Isaac. So we must also for the
Lord's sake, through faith, and not through sight, forsake
everything that we have in this world, notonly in spirit, as
may have been done by us for a time, and which is the smallest
part; but now everything must be forsaken indeed by me,
unworthy one, in the hope of meeting Him in the air, and being
ever with the Lord. I Thess. 4:17.</p>

<p>Hence Peter writes, "At the appearing of Jesus Christ; whom
having not seen, ye love; in whom, though now ye see him not,
yet believing, ye rejoice with joy unspeakable and full of
glory; receiving the end of your faith, even the salvation of
your souls." I Pet. 1:7-9. Behold, dear brethren, then we shall
walk no more by faith, being absent from the Lord, but by
sight; then shall the pilgrimage be over, then hope shall
cease, then shall we receive what we now hope for, namely, we
shall inherit all things, for the marriage shall then be at an
end, for the bridegroom shall come for His bride, which is His
church. Then shall the vision which John writes be
complete, "And I saw a new heaven and a new earth; for the first
heaven and the first earth were passed away; and there was no
more sea." Revelation 21:1. Mark, dear brethren, he says, "There
was no more sea;" for it is much understood to relate to this
present time. But we still have a sea, whether this be meant in
a natural or a spiritual sense, however one may understand it.
For in the fourth chapter (v. 6) we read of a sea of glass, but
as I understand it, John speaks of the natural sea, and of the
natural heaven and earth. And at the last day, when heaven and
earth, according to the words of Peter, shall be dissolved by
fire, and be renewed, we find nothing about a natural sea, but
it says, "Nevertheless, we, according to his promise, look for a
new heaven and a new earth wherein dwelleth righteousness, " for
God faithfully keeps His promises. II Pet. 3:12, 13,; Isa.
65:17. Then shall His righteousness be revealed; for when God
shall give to everyone in his body according to that he hath
done, whether it be good or bad, then shall God's righteousness
be manifest in righteousness as well as in unrighteousness,
since He will faithfully keep His promise to everyone. Jer.
17:10; II Corinthians 5:10; Rev. 2:23.</p>

<p>And John further writes, "And I John saw the holy city, new
Jerusalem, coming down from God out of heaven, prepared as a
bride adorned for her husband. And I heard a great voice out of
heaven, saying, Behold, the tabernacle of God is with men, and
he will dwell with them, and they shall be his people, and God
himself shall be with them, and be their God. And God shall
wipe away all tears from their eyes;" which, dear brethren, has
not vet been done, for the tears are still flowing here from
the eyes of those who are renewed by Christ. Revelation 21:2-4;
II Cor. 6:16; Jer. 24:7; Zech. 8:8; Isa. 25:8; Rev. 7:17; John
16:20. But when the righteous shall stand in great boldness
before the face of such as have afflicted them (Wisd. 5:1) ,
then shall the tears be wiped from the eyes; for there shall be
no more death, neither sorrow, nor crying, neither shall there
be any more pain: for the</p>

</div><div id="814"> 

<p>former things are passed away. And He that sat upon the
throne said,"Behold, I make all things new." Revelation 21:4,
5; II Cor. 5:17. Hence Peter writes, "Seeing then that all these
things shall be dissolved, what manner of persons ought ye to
be in all holy conversation and godliness, looking for and
hasting unto the coming of the Lord." II Peter 3:11, 12. For if
we are to inherit the new things, we must here be renewed in
spirit; for otherwise we cannot arise to eternal life, for they
that have done evil shall come forth unto the resurrection of
damnation. John 5:29. Therefore Peter writes, "Wherefore,
beloved, seeing, that ye look for such things (namely, since
you expect to inherit the new heavens and the new earth,
according to God's promise), be diligent that ye may be found
of him in peace, without spot, and blameless. And account that
the longsuffering of our Lord Jesus Christ is your salvation;
for God is longsuffering, and not willing, that any should
perish, but that they should come to repentance." II Peter 3:9,
14, 15; Ezek. 18:32; I Tim. 2:4. For if the Lord had come
eighteen or twenty years ago, we would, it is to be feared, not
have been prepared yet; therefore His having been longsuffering
to usward will be for our salvation, if we are now found
without spot and blameless in the peace of God.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear brethren, take heed to yourselves, and
prepare yourselves for the Lord; for our dear Lord stands
perhaps also before your door, with the ring in His hand ready
to knock. Therefore, dear brethren, prepare your hearts for the
Lord, so that, when He comes and knocks, you may stand ready to
open to Him; for He comes at a time when we least expect Him.
Hence be sober and watch, and gird up the loins of your mind,
and always act manfully in truth, as a valiant hero, to oversee
our poor little flock; and lead them into the true pasture of
the divine Word that they may be fed; for man doth not live by
bread alone, but by every word that proceedeth out of the mouth
of God. Deut. 8:3; Matt. 4:4. Hence David says, "The Lord is my shepherd; I shall not want; he feedeth me in
rich pastures, and leadeth me to the refreshing waters."</p>

<p>But though Christ is the true Shepherd, He has ordained
divers ministers in the church (I Corinthians 12:5) to oversee
the sheep, and to lead them to the pasture; for though the
children have bread, someone must cut it for them. Hence, dear
brother, do the best in this time of need, and stay with them,
and, when the chief Shepherd shall appear, you shall receive a
crown of glory that fadeth not away. And always see diligently
to it, that the church be not left uncared for, but that she
may always be served with all the ordinances. Abandon excessive
subtilty and human opinion, and tell the people to act
according to God's truth; even as I briefly wrote to our
church, and would have written more yet, if I had had more
paper. Thus, my dear brother, always act wisely, and keep
yourself pure; beware of meddling with the strife of
others;examine a matter well, before you meddle with it, for he
that meddleth with the strife of others is like one that taketh
a dog by the ears. Prov. 26:17. But whatever you can speak to
promote peace, that do; but speak not what tends to division,
for then is not the time. But if a false doctrine arise against
the established and well-tried articles of the truth, act as a
man, yet with kindness and longsuffering; defend the truth, and
turn the foxes out of the vineyard of the Lord, that the tender
branches may not be bitten off or torn from the vine, Christ
Jesus, but that it may remain sound and fruitful in the
Lord.</p>

<p>Therefore, dear brother, exercise yourself in the
Scriptures, and give up a part of your temporal business, that
through habit your mind may be practiced in discerning good and
evil; foritemporal business is a great hindrance to spiritual'
gifts, for thereby the thoughts are filled with anxiety, and
become widely scattered. Hence, dear brother, remember that the
apostle says, that bodily exercise profiteth little; for it
profits the body, but not the spirit. The Lord has blessed you
much according to the flesh, so that you are not urged by
necessity. But godly exercise is profitable unto all things,
for it profits the spirit and the body, since it cares for
both, remembers the inner man, and does every thing that tends
to his salvation. Such is the nature of godliness; and it does
not neglect the body, but knows how to use the temporal things
with moderation. And it casts its care upon the Lord, knowing
that He cares for it. Hence the apostle says, that it has the
promise of the life that now is, and of that which is to come.
Therefore, dear brother, if you be risen with Christ, seek
those things which are above, where Christ sitteth on the right
hand of God. Set your affection on things above, not on things
on the earth; and be not like a mole, whose mouth is always
digging and rooting in the earth, and which, moreover, is so
blind, that he hardly sees the heavens. Not, dear brother, that
I say, that you are so; by no means, for I have a better
confidence concerning you. But when we thoroughly examine
ourselves, we find ourselves to be of such a nature, that we
are earthly-minded, and blind in divine things; and though we
are enlightened through Christ Jesus, that we have obtained
sight in divine things, and been renewed through Him, we
nevertheless sometimes follow too much our innate nature, by
which nature faith must sometimes bow and show its back, for it
is crushed down by the innate nature, which through unbelief
and want of confidence toward God still bears its fruits,
whence it comes that men make shipwreck in the faith; for when
two vessels that are enemies to each other meet on the sea, one
is seen to vanquish the other. Thus also, faith and unbelief
coupled with man's nature, are enemies to each other, so that
they conquer each other. Hence, if we do not by faith firmly
resist with the inner man, we shall in the course of time be
overcome; for unbelief has much support, in the first place,
from</p>

</div><div id="815"> 

<p>Satan, who works in the children of unbelief (Eph. 2:2), in
the second place, from our own flesh. Therefore consider, dear
brother, if a city is betrayed from within, how great
resistance must be made, before the enemy can be put down, and
the city possessed in peace. Thus also must we show great
diligence, before we overcome all these enemies. In the first
place, our own flesh, which is prone to all evil, for it lusts
against the Spirit. Gal. 5:17. Hence we must observe how
prudent the kings of this world are. When they feel that their
enemies begin to bestir themselves, they make provision and
strengthen themselves, to resist those enemies. But we, who
like kings and men, ought to be prudent in that which is good,
and simple as children in that which is evil, when we feel that
our enemies begin to bestir themselves, go to meet them; but it
is not done through faith, but through unbelief, namely, when
we feel that our own nature, which is earthly minded, is not
content with a fair profit, but would rather have still
more-for it loves money, and hence will not soon be sated
therewith-we meet it-we set up two or three additional looms
and do not rightly consider how hurtful it is to our faith, and
how widely our thoughts are thereby scattered; so that we
become much more concerned with temporal, than with the
spiritual things; and thus the spiritual gifts decrease, while
they ought to increase, and we have no desire to offer our hand
to the flock of Christ, and to feed it with what we have
received from the Lord. Truly does the apostle say, "Godliness
with contentment is great gain. For we brought nothing into
this world, and it is certain we can carry nothing out." I
Timothy 6:6, 7; Heb. 13:5.</p>

<p>And now, dear brother, though we think, I do not seek to lay
up treasures, I do not want to keep the gain for myself alone,
consider also, that we are not for ourselves, for we are
servants of a great king. Now, if you were a king, and had
servants, and appointed one to be your chamberlain, and another
to be your halberdier; suppose the chamberlain should forsake
the office in which you wished him to serve you, and should
want to be a halberdier; consider whether you would be well
satisfied with that servant. Thus also, dear brother, the Lord
has appointed you His servant, that you should serve Him with
the spiritual gift which you have received from Him; and if you
want to forsake that, and exercise yourself with that which is
temporal, to serve Him with it, consider whether you will
thereby please the Lord. And if you will assign as a reason,
that it is not your office, know that they must not all be
teachers who exhort the church; this is no rule laid down in
the Scriptures. Therefore; my dear and much beloved brother,
take heed to yourself, and surrender yourself to the Lord, and
stay with the church; this I pray you with all my heart, that
the little flock may remain together. I hope the Lord will help
and keep you until the proper time, if you seek Him with all
your heart; lay it to heart, this I pray you. Ishould have
written you more concerning it, but there is no opportunity. I
hope to write you another letter, if the Lord grants time; you
may also lay that to heart. Herewith I commend my dear brother
to the Lord, and bid you a cordial adieu. Receive my letter in
good part, for it has not been written only for your sake; I
wish that it might be read by M., or at M's., and by all our
ministers.</p>

<p>Written in my prison to my dear brother, D. B., by me,</p>

<p>JACOB THE CHANDLER,</p>

<p>On the 29 and 30th of May, A. D. 1569.</p>

<p class="c27">Alle die lijden na den Wille Godts, wilt
hierop</p>

<p class="c27">mercken,</p>

<p class="c27">Die bevelen haer Zielen den getrouwen
Schepper</p>

<p class="c27">met goede Wercken. (I Peter 4:19).</p><br />

<h2>ANOTHER LETTER OF JACOB THE CHANDLER, WRITTEN IN
PRISON; IN WHICH HE ADMONISHES HIS FELLOW MINISTERS, NOT TO
FLEE AS HIRELINGS, AND TO LET CHRIST'S SHEEP GO ASTRAY THROUGH
LACK OF INSTRUCTION; BUT FAITHFULLY TO DISCHARGE THE OFFICE
IMPOSED UPON THEM</h2> 

<p class="c3">As he had himself been in Friesland, and had
heard from the lips of both parties the difficulty that had
arisen among the people of God, and understood that they had on
both sides sinned against God and their neighbor, and made
themselves blamable, he therefore made much mention concerning
this matter in this letter, as you, kind reader, may see.</p>

<p>I, Jacob the Chandler, imprisoned for the Lord's sake (Eph.
3:1; II Tim. 1:8); wish all the elders and ministers of the
churches in Flanders, who oversee the flock of Christ, and L.
V. or A. D., wisdom, knowledge and true love from God the
heavenly Father, grace, mercy and peace, through our Lord Jesus
Christ, and true comfort, strength and power, through the Holy
Ghost, to serve and oversee the church aright, to be with her
as a father, and faithfully to assist her in every need, to the
upbuilding of the church, to the praise of the Lord, and to the
salvation of your souls. This I wish you, my dear and beloved
brethren, as a friendly greeting, and a cordial adieu.</p>

<p>After all proper and Christian greetings, I pray all my dear
brethren, to consider my letter in love, even as I testified
before the Lord and all the Godfearing, that it has been done
by me out of love. For having heard that many who oversee and
care for the church seek to be released, in order to journey
out of the country, love for the people has prompted me to
write you, in order to admonish you that you should rightly
think of the poor children whom you would leave behind in great
misery; whom you have begotten again through the incorruptible
seed, and brought into the true way, yea, some of whom have not
yet been fully regenerated, and can not rightly discern between
good and</p>

</div><div id="816"> 

<p>evil; and if you thus go away and leave the poor children,
they are in great peril of perishing, and straying back into
the world. Hence, dear brethren, consider how little joy it
will be for you when you will hear this of them; for we would
not like to leave our natural children in any need if we could
with a good conscience help the matter. Now, you may think
within yourselves, "I have served the church along time; another
may now serve." But I say, dear brethren, with David, "Be not as
the horse, or as the mule, which have no understanding: whose
mouth must be held in with bit and bridle, if they will not
come unto thee." Ps. 32:9. For we must not render the service
of servants, which is often reluctantly rendered, and who look
to one another, for they serve for wages, and do not seek the
advantage of the house. But we must render the service of
children, which is given from love, for they live unto their
father, and not to themselves, as Christ did not live to
Himself, but to Him that sent Him to be a minister of the
kingdom, and conducted Himself among them as one that serves
(Matt. 20:28; Luke 22:27); which service was given from love,
not a year or two, but all the days of His life, for He was
obedient unto death. Phil. 2:8. And He appointed unto His
apostles the kingdom, as His father had appointed it unto Him,
so that they who according to the gift were the greatest in the
kingdom, had to be their ministers and servants. And the
apostles took help, and ordained in the church pastors,
teachers, ministers, helps, governments, and the like (II Tim.
2:2; Tit. 1:5; I Cor. 12:28), and appointed unto them the
kingdom, as Christ had appointed it unto the disciples, namely,
to serve the kingdom from love, and to live therein to the Lord
and their neighbor, and not to themselves. Hence the apostle
complains of some, saying, "All seek their own, and not the
things which are Jesus Christ's." Philippians 2:21. Thus let
all that serve in the kingdom, who are chosen according to the
rule and ordinance of the Scriptures to serve the church, give
themselves to the church from love, yet, my dear brethren, with
this understanding: if for the church's sake you suffer loss in
temporal matters, it is her duty to assist you. Deut. 12:19;
Sirach 7:31; Luke 10:7.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear brethren, let everyone of you take heed to
himself; for we certainly believe that the choosing of the
church is from God. Let us therefore consider; if the Lord has
chosen us to serve Him in this way, we must give ourselves to
the Lord, whenever we have good reasons for it, in this that we
can satisfy the church, though we may say, "There are others to
whom this belongs more properly than to me." This is no reason
that avails before the Lord. If one might thereby excuse
himself, Jonah could easily have found such a reason; but
because he refused to go and proclaim to the Ninevites the will
of the Lord, he had to go into the belly of the whale; even as
I unworthy one have seen some in my time, who refused too much,
but it did not turn out to their good. Likewise, Moses and
others sought excuses (Ex 4:10; Jer. 1:6); but it did not avail
them, the Lord said: Do not I know whom I will send? For He
needs no counselors; He well knows for what He wants to use us.
Nevertheless the example of Moses is much followed in the
churches, and it is regarded as an honorable thing for a man to
refuse; yet it does not please the Lord, for He was angry at
Moses. But the prophet Isaiah did not do thus, but said, "Send
me, Lord; and with this the Lord was not displeased." Isa. 6:8.
Elisha, also, asked for a double portion of Elijah's spirit.
Eli, ah said, "Thou hast asked a hard thing; nevertheless, it
shall be so unto thee." II Kings 2:9, 10. And on this wise Paul
says, "If a man desire the office of a bishop, he desireth a
good work." I Tim. 3:1.</p>

<p>See, dear brethren, thus we must follow what is honorable
and praiseworthy before the Lord, and think, they that minister
well purchase to themselves a good degree, and great boldness
in the faith. v. 14; Matt. 25:21. As the children of this
world, when they can get into the service of any lord, they
endeavor to serve faithfully, that they may obtain a higher
office; so must we also endeavor to serve the Lord in that
wherein we are called, that we may obtain power to rule the
heathen with a rod of iron. Ps. 2:9; Rev. 2:27. Therefore, my
dear brethren, remain together, as long as it is possible for
you, and you can encourage one another; but when you begin to
separate, you make one another weak; hence remain faithfully
together, and take heed to your ministry. You that care for the
poor, exercise diligent care over them, visit them frequently,
and see how they do; admonish them with a fatherly heart to
labor (Eph. 4:28; II Thess. 3:12), and comfort them in their
tribulation, for a consoling word helps the afflicted more than
the gift.. And cleave firmly with your heart in love to your
ministers of the Word; for you must be one heart with them, and
you will be the better able to keep the people in peace; for if
the rulers of a country are not at peace among themselves,
there cannot well be peace in the land. So also in the
churches, if the ministers are at variance with one another,
there cannot well be peace among the common brethren. Hence,
dear brethren, remain at peace with one another; and you
deacons, be a support to the ministers of the Word, and take
their part; for they must blow the trumpet, that the drowsy may
awake (Isa. 62:6; Joel 2:1); and some drowsy people are of such
a nature, that they do not like to be waked up: so also some
that have become drowsy in sin do not like to be waked up.
Hence there is sometimes much talk behind the back of such;
therefore you and all pious brethren must defend your man, and
talk to the backbiters, and admonish them, and you will
encourage your man. And you, dear brethren, who oversee the
church with the Word of the Lord, remain with the church as
long as is possible for you;</p>

</div><div id="817"> 

<p>for if you want. to go away, you discourage the other
ministers, and weigh them down completely, and scatter the
flock. Hence I pray you, for the people's sake, as one that
loves them with a pure heart, do not forsake them, but remain
with them, and look at those unto whom Christ appointed the
kingdom, as it had been appointed unto Him by His Father, how
diligently they exhorted the kingdom, and. fed the flock. For
they deemed it profitable to admonish and to strengthen them,
and to stir up their pure minds, as long as they were in the
body, that after their decease they might remember the same. II
Peter 1:13. For the apostle had exhorted them for three years
day and night with tears. Acts 20:31. And he taught the bishops
of Ephesus, that they should take heed unto themselves, and to
the flock. v. 28. Now you will perhaps say, "We are no bishops."
Then I say that they must not all be bishops who exhort the
church, or proclaim the Word of the Lord; but everyone must be
faithful in his ministry." For there are manifold ministries (I
Cor. 12:5); if any have a ministry, let him wait on his
ministering; if any teach, let him wait on his teaching; if any
exhort, let him wait on his exhortation (Romans 12:7, 8), and
thus feed the flock of Christ, not by constraint, but
willingly, for the Lord would be served from love, even as He
served from love. I Pet. 5:2. Hence the apostle writes, "If I do
this thing willingly, I have a reward: but if against my will,
a dispensation of the Gospel is committed unto me." I Cor.
9:17.</p>

<p>Therefore, dear brethren, accept them gladly, and bring them
up with the rational, sincere milk (I Pet. 2:2), like a good
nurse, who so loves her child which she nurses, though she has
not given birth to it, that she cannot give it up without
tears, when the father comes and takes it home, notwithstanding
it is a stranger to her according to the flesh. How much more
then shall you love your children, and not forsake them as long
as you can remain with them, since you not only nursed them,
but may have given birth to a great part of them; and they are
your brethren and sisters in the Lord, whereby you are the more
bound to them in love, to serve and protect them. As a hen
protects her chickens under her wings from the birds of prey;
so do you also protect them from evil, wild beasts that cause
discord and offenses contrary to the doctrine of Christ; for
their word will eat as doth a canker, and will destroy like the
pestilence. Romans 16:17; II Tim. 2:17. Hence, protect them
herein, and separate from such persons; keep the flock in peace
as far as is possible for you, and avoid all strife, and do not
meddle with it as far as you can keep out of it; for he that
meddleth with strife not belonging to him is like one that
taketh a dog by the ears, and by strife many a heart is
polluted. Always speak, as much as you can, what tends to
peace, and not to division, for that is not the time then; for
a division is very soon made, which can only with great
difficulty be healed, andso many a simple soul perishes
thereby. And in my judgment it is no usage of the Scriptures,
in times of decay to settle differences by excommunication,
though this is sometimes done through zeal; but it is good to
be always zealously affected in a good thing. Gal. 4:18. For he
that transgressed the law of Moses died without mercy under two
or three witnesses (Deut. 17:6; Heb. 10:28); for this example
we have first in the Old Testament, where they also had an
excommunication, to punish the wicked with death. Nevertheless,
the Lord was not willing to use the excommunication, nor did He
give the prophets any charge, that the excommunication should
be used, but He called to them, that they should repent and be
converted, and He would be merciful to them, and purge them
most purely from their dross; for He can do this, dear
brethren, without injuring the gold or silver Isa. 1:16; Jer.
4:14; Joel 2:12; Isa. 1:25.</p>

<p>In the second place we have this example in the Testament,
first in the case of John and the churches in Asia, how
lamentably they had decayed; yet John did not make use of
excommunication with respect to them, nor do we find that the
Lord once asked him why he had not done this; but He called
them to repentance through John, which if they would not do, He
would remove their candlestick out of his place. Rev. 2 and 3.
And whether the apostle insisted as strongly on
excommunication, in regard to that one fornicator, in the
second epistle to the Corinthians, as he did in the first, this
every one may consider; for the apostles always had a godly
care for the simple, and sought to prevent division, as far as
was possible for them; hence they tried every means to allay
strife, as can clearly be seen in the Acts of the Apostles. For
when the Jewish brethren came to trouble the believers among
the Gentiles, saying, "Except ye be circumcised according to the
law of Moses, ye cannot be saved, " so that there was a great
uproar among the people, there rose up also at Jerusalem
certain of the sect of the Pharisees which believed, saying
that it was needful to circumcise them, and to command them to
keep the law of Moses; which was certainly great
injudiciousness. Yet the elders and the apostles did not
persist in charging them with their unwise course, for fear of
division, but met the Jewish brethren, to avoid division, and
adopted certain articles from the law, which were not contrary
to the evangelical truth, and determined that those who had
been converted from among the Gentiles should not be troubled,
and that no burden should be laid upon them, than that they
should abstain from meats offered to idols, and from blood, and
from things strangled, and from fornication. Acts 15; I Cor.
10:28; I Thess. 4:3; Gen. 9:4; Lev. 7:26. By this the Jews were
pacified, for they might easily think that they were right in a
measure at least, because some articles from the law were
imposed upon the Gentiles. As also in the twenty-first chapter,
how they allayed the strife or offense that was between the</p>

</div><div id="818"> 

<p>Jews and Paul. They had heard that Paul taught to forsake
Moses; hence the elders advised that Paul should take four men
unto him, and go into the temple, and purify themselves and
shave their heads. This they were not bound by conscience to
do, but they did it for the sake of the Jewish brethren, for
they [the elders] said, "They will know that those things
whereof they were informed concerning thee are nothing." Then
he went to signify to them the accomplishment of the days of
purification. Acts 21. For when they were pacified it was
easier to persuade them that the law had an end in Christ. Rom.
10:4. But they did not determine, that Paul should stand still
in his ministry till he had pacified them; for this would
frequently have had to be done, since there was often talk
about him, as can well be seen in the epistle to the
Corinthians but with him it was a very small matter that he
should be . judged of them, or of man's judgment, for he
says, "I judge not mine own self." I Cor. 4:3. Nor does this
tend to peace, but to more strife; for a church cannot be kept
in quietude when she has to lose her pastor, because there are
persons that talk about him, and do not know what the matter
is, nor whether they say it justly or unjustly of him. Hence
the accuser must come before his church, and accuse him there;
if they are matters of which they cannot agree together, the
church may hear the matter, and if the accused is guilty, she
may help punish him; thus she will be delivered from his hand,
so that he can make no trouble. And thus the matter must first
be proven, before the church can be helped, and also before
punishment can take place. Hence Paul writes to
Timothy, "Against an elder receive not an accusation, but before
two or three witnesses." I Tim. 5:19. For he well knew that
there is often much said about them. Therefore, dear brethren,
continue steadfast, this I pray you for the sake of God's
truth, and do not forsake them, namely, your men, before they
are forsaken by the Lord; but always seek to build up one
another, that the churches may be supplied, and the flock fed;
that Jerusalem may have watchmen upon her walls who do not
sleep or hold their peace day and night, but remember the Lord
and their flock, and say, "For Zion's sake will I not hold my
peace, and for Jerusalem's sake I will not rest, until the
righteousness thereof go forth as brightness, and the salvation
thereof as a lamp that burneth." Isa. 62:6, 2.</p>

<p>Thus, my dear brethren, do the best with the poor sheep,
stand by them faithfully, and do not forsake them in this great
need, but exhort and comfort them with these words: how our
fathers were tried in many ways, and became the friends of God,
since they had to overcome through much affiction. Judith 8:25;
Deut. 8. Likewise, Isaac, Jacob, the prophets, and all that
loved God, remained steadfast, as the angel said to
Tobit, "Because thou didst please God, it was not possible that
thou shouldst remain without temptation."Tobit 12*; Prov. 3:12.
And if you fall into affliction for their sakes, think of what
the apostle writes: Therefore, I endure all things for the
elect's sake, that they may also obtain salvationeven as has
now fallen to me unworthy as I am. For if it had not been for
the church, I think I would have remained in the country of
Cleves; but I can with David say to the Lord, "My times are in
thy hand." Ps. 31:15. And it was his will to bring my time to
an end, as the facts show. But the apostle says, "Now I rejoice
in my sufferings for you, and fill up that which is behind of
the afflictions of Christ in my flesh for His body's sake,
which is the church." Col. 1:24; Rom. 12:5; Eph. 1:23. And if
you suffer for the church, you have acted according to the love
of Christ, given your life for the brethren and for the sheep.
John 10:11; I John 3:16. Thus, my dear brethren, watch, stand
fast in the faith, quit you like men, and let all your things
be done with charity.</p>

<p>Finally, I will address myself briefly to my dear sisters,
namely, to your wives, to exhort and entreat them to be patient
with their husbands, and not to importune them, in order to get
them out of the country. But consider the great distress, and
have pity and compassion with the people, and think, that we
must help bear that with which the Lord tries our husbands, and
by faith possess our souls in patience. Luke 21:19; Heb; 10:36.
As when God tried Abraham, that he should offer up his son,
Sarah had to help bear it, for she would have had to miss her
only son, if the Lord had not given him back to Abraham. Yet we
can not see that Sarah resisted Abraham; she obeyed Abraham as
her lord, and suffered him to live by his faith in all in which
the Lord tried him, and admonished him herself, that he should
cast out the bondwoman and her son. Gen. 21:10. Thus also you,
my dear sisters, obey your husbands, and let them live by their
faith in all in which they are tried by the Lord. Genesis 3:16;
Eph. 5:22; Col. 3:18. And do not discourage them, but rather
refresh their mind when you see that they are burdened through
the trouble which they have with the people, and remember that
you are Sarah's daughters, as long as ye do well, and are
not"afraid with any amazement." I Pet. 3:6. Hence, dear
sisters, be of good cheer, and trust your God; He</p>

<p>will not suffer you to be tempted above that you are able,
but will with the temptation also make a way to escape, that
you may be able to bear it. I Cor. 10:13, II Pet. 2:9. For God
knows our strength, that it is nothing, hence He cares for us,
for He bath said,"I will never leave thee, nor forsake thee."
So that we may boldly say, the Lord is my helper, and I will
not fear what man shall do unto me. Ps. 37:25; Josh. 1:5;
Hebrews 13:5, 6; Ps. 118:6. But we must slay and overcome them
in the name of the Lord, for they are but dust and ashes, and
shall perish as grass, yea, the moth shall</p>

<p class="c8">* See German version, v. 13.</p>

</div><div id="819"> 

<p>eat them like wool as Isaiah says; and he further says, "I am
he that comforteth you; who art thou, that thou shouldest be
afraid of a man that shall die, and of the son of man which
shall be made as grass?" Isa. 40:6; I Pet. 1:24; Isa. 51:8, 12.
For with them there is only an arm of flesh, but with us is the
Lord Himself, who will help us, and fight. our battles. II
Chron. 32:8; Jer. 17:5; Wisdom 4:28. Although they are now like
mad men, who spare none, but spoil and destroy those that fear
the Lord, and exalt themselves very greatly, so that almost
every one is afraid of and trembles before them, yet the Lord
shall humble and destroy them when their spoiling and
destroying shall have an end. II Esd. 16:71; Isa. 14:14. But
now, dear sisters, we must be tried as gold in the fire, that
our trial may work patience, and that patience may have her
perfect work. Zech. 13:9; Wisd. 3:6. For when we are patient in
our tribulation; we overcome and do not get weary or faint;
yea, though our outward man perish, yet the inward man is
renewed day by day. II Cor. 4:16. And we choose rather to
suffer affliction with the people of God, than enjoy the
pleasures of sin for a season; and esteem the reproach of
Christ greater riches than the treasures in Egypt, having
respect unto the recompense of the reward. Heb. 11:25, 26.</p>

<p>See, dear sisters, take courage, and go forth with the widow
Judith against the proud Holofernes, who had been sent forth by
King Nabuchodonosor, to bring every country under his power.
And he pretended that he was God; yet his servant, Holofernes,
was slain by Judith. Judith 2:5; 13:8. Thus also has now the
son of perdition, who is called God upon earth, sent forth a
proud messenger, and thinks thereby to bring everything under
his power. But, as I hear, he has been vanquished at Kortrijck,
by a poor, simple widow, even as Christ vanquished the scribes
and Pilate. Thus you must also go forth dear sisters, to
overcome him by faith. And take an example also from the woman
Jael, who slew Sisera, the adversary and enemy of the house of
Israel. She took a hammer, and drove a nail through his head,
so that he lay there dead. Judges 4:21. Thus must you also, my
dear sisters, go forth by faith against the enemy and adversary
of the house of Israel, who through his children and servants
makes so much clamor and ado, namely, the devil or Satan, and
must with the hammer of the divine Word drive the nail, Christ
Jesus, through his head, and say with the apostle, "Thanks be to God which giveth us the victorp, through our
Lord Jesus Christ." I Cor. 15:57. And he also says, "Thanks be
unto God, which always causeth us to triumph in Christ." II
Gor. 2:14.</p>

<p>Thus, my dear sisters, be always valiant, and patient
withal, and exhort your husbands to stay with the flock; and
know that whatsoever good thing any man doeth, the same shall
he receive of the Lord, Eph. 6:8.</p>

<p>Therefore, be steadfast, immovable, alwaysabounding in the
work of the Lord, forasmuch as ye know that your labor is not
in vain in the Lord. I Cor. 15:58.</p>

<p>Herewith I will commend you, my dear and much beloved
brethren and sisters, to the great Almighty God, who alone is
wise, and pray Him to put into your heart to do that which is
acceptable before Him. And I pray you to receive my letter
which has been written out of love, in good part; and if there
are any views in it that are not like your own suffer them in
love, for we stand, I hope, in one faith. For I am not
conscious of any change in me; what I unworthy one, have taught
the church and the people, in that I still stand unchanged, the
Lord be praised for His grace, who has for about eighteen years
kept me therein. Greet all the brethren and sisters that live
among you beloved very much in my name. Herewith I will bid you
adieu; adieu, my dear brethren with your wives, till we see one
another in eternal joy; the Lord grant you His grace, that we
may find one another there. Written the 31st of May and the 1st
of June, by me, JACOB DE ROORE, in my imprisonment.</p>

<p><i>Wherefore, let them that suffer according to the will of
God commit the keeping of their-souls to him in well-doing, as
to a faithful Creator. I</i> Pet. 4:19.</p>

<h2>ADRIAEN OL, A. D. 1569</h2> 

<p>About the year 1569 there was imprisoned at Armentiers, in
Flanders for the Word of God and the testimony of Jesus, a
brother by the name of Adriaen 01, who, as he could by no
temptation or threat, inflicted upon him by the papists, be
caused to apostatize, but remained faithful to his God, was
condemned by those bloodthirsty men.. And thus he was not put
to death at said place, for the testimony of Jesus, having
offered up his corruptible body in great steadfastness for a
sweet smelling savor unto God.</p>

<p>To this Adriaen Ol, Jacob the Chandler wrote his nineteenth
letter, for consolation in his imprisonment.</p>

<br />

<h1>ABRAHAM PICOLET, HENDERICK VAN ETTEN, AND MAEYKEN VAN DER GOES, A. D. 1569</h1>
<p>At Antwerp there was one Abraham Picolet, who was very intimately acquainted with Henderick van Etten, born at Breda, and a certain Herman N. Now it happened that as said Henderick intended to go home, he requested his companion, that they would yet once before his departure enjoy and rejoice themselves together (walking) by singing and speaking of the word of the Lord, as a leave-taking from the good fellowship which they had had together in the Lord. But as there was a great persecution at that time under the government of the Duke of Alva, these two young men, while walking in a forest in the vicinity of Wilrijck,
</p><p class ="c20">Page 819</p>

<p>near Antwerp, were apprehended by the bailiff of
Borgerhout, who searched them, and finding in their possession
several books, as, a New Testament and others, he strictly
examined them; and asked them where they had last been to
confession and to the sacrament. Thereupon Abraham answered,
that it had been in Italy. He further asked, how long ago it
had been, whereupon he replied, "Four years." Learning these and
other things from them, he on the second day of Whitsuntide
brought them prisoners to Antwerp. But as the aforesaid Herman
was not firmly built upon the cornerstone Christ, his building
did not stand, for his sandy foundation could not endure these
storms. When examined, he confessed that he had been to
confession and to the sacrament last Easter, though this was
not true. And in order to confirm this, the parish priest or
pastor of St. George's church testified to it, and by this
means he was released from prison. But the other two, adhering
to their faith, had many conflicts and disputations during
their long imprisonment, with the blind sophists, who went to
great pains and labor to draw them from the truth. But as they
fled for refuge to the Captain of the faith they were not
forsaken, but their assurance waxed stronger and stronger, so
that they constantly wished for the day of their deliverance.
Rom. 7:24. They were also very diligent, constantly to edify
their neighbors by writing an exhortation, so that by their
letters and steadfastness in the faith they gained some yet in
their bonds. Philem. 10. After they had lain in confinement for
a while, the tyrants, seeing that there was no hope of moving
them from the truth, proceeded further to deprive them of their
lives, and as the bailiff held his court near the Kroonenburgh
gate, he had them brought there twice before his judges, but
this leading to no result, they were put the third time into a
wagon and thus again placed before the judges. But as they were
of good cheer and strong in the faith, Abraham, as he stepped
to the wagon said, "Let no one among you," says Peter,"suffer as
a thief or robber or as one that seeks other men's property;
but if any man suffer as a Christian let him not be ashamed,
but let him glorify God on this behalf." I Pet. 4:15, 16.</p>

<p>Henderick spoke very little, yet nothing but boldness could
be seen in him. As they stood before the judges, their sentence
was read to them, namely, that they should be burned alive.
When the reading of the sentence was finished, Abraham said
that he thanked the lords for having been troubled with him,
and that he prayed God to enlighten them. They were then put
back into the wagon, and brought to the prison, where some more
God-fearing persons were confined, of whom the margrave caused
a woman to be sentenced to the same death, namely, Maeyken van
der Goes, who valiantly followed her husband, jasper the
Taschrinekmaecker, who had been offered up before. Thus the
tyrants satisfied their desire onthese three lambs for the
slaughter, and had them burned alive the following day, after
they had fastened their tongues out of their mouths with
screwplates to prevent them from speaking. But in all this they
valiantly overcame through Christ, who was their strength; and
went boldly onward with Joshua and Caleb, to possess the land
of promise, to the comfort and strength of many witnesses who
beheld it. After they were burned, the bodies of the two men
were given as food to the birds (Ps. 79:2) on the way from
Wilrijck because they had been apprehended under that
seignioralty.</p>

<p>These two valiant heroes and champions, though they had not
yet received water baptism upon confession of their faith,
showed that they had nevertheless been baptized by Christ with
the Holy Ghost and with fire.</p>

<p>They wrote many letters full of comfort and earnest
exhortations, especially Henderick, who, having formerly been a
soldier, exhorted the brethren much to fight manfully in the
spiritual war, to keep good watch, and to persevere unto the
end, in order to receive from the spiritual captain Jesus
Christ, as wages and reward, the crown of eternal life. But all
these letters have remained undiscovered, on account of the
severe persecution; only one by Abraham Picolet has fallen into
our hands, which we have added here for the satisfaction of the
sincere reader.</p>

<h2>A LETTER BY ABRAHAM PICOLET, WRITTEN TO<br />
HIS SISTERS</h2> 

<p><i>Love God above all, attend to the Word of the Lord, and
have your delight therein. Matt.</i> 22:37; Ps. 1:2.</p>

<p>The abundant great grace and eternal peace of God our
heavenly Father, and the Lord Jesus Christ, who is the Father
of mercies, and the God of all comfort may He grant you
Christian wisdom, unchanging faith, a steadfast mind, and a
true understanding of the divine word in truth; this I wish
you, my beloved sisters, with all my heart. Amen. Rom. 1:7; II
Cor. 1:3; Matt. 24:13.</p>

<p>Know, my sisters, that I, Abraham your brother, imprisoned
for the Word of God, let your love know, that I receive such
strength and courage from the Lord, that I hope not to depart
from Him; and since He does not forsake me, I trust by the help
of the Lord, to confess His divine Word before the blind men as
long as there is breath in me, for He helps us remarkably, so
that I see and feel it, thanks to Him for the grace which He
shows me, poor sinner, for which I can never sufficiently
praise Him. Acts 12:3; Rev. 1:9; Heb. 10:38; 13:5; Matthew
10:31; II Cor. 2:14; Ps. 37:39. After all proper and friendly
greetings, know, my sisters, that it rejoiced me very often, to
have heard from you, that you also trusted to follow the Lord,
to adhere to the eternal truth all the days of your life, and
to serve and fear Christ; for He is the way, the truth and the
life. John 14:6.</p>

</div><div id="821"> 

<p>He that obeys Him shall inherit eternal joy, since He
promises eternal joy to them that love Him and keep His
commandments; and His commandments are not grievous, and His
promises are true. I John 5:3. Hence, my beloved sisters, since
you know His will, and the great grace which He has given your
love, take heed that you may keep His commandments according to
your weak ability; for He does not require more than that you
do what you can. O dear lambs, believe the Gospel, and walk the
narrow way, which is but a foot wide, and which leads to
eternal life; for many shall seek for it, and shall not be able
to get there. Luke 13:24. For not all that cry, Lord, Lord
shall enter in; but they that do the will of the Father which
is in heaven. Matt. 7:21. My beloved sisters, strive for the
strait gate, namely, eternal life. Since you hear the voice of
the Lord (John 10:27), see that you obey His words, and put off
all concerning the former conversation, namely, the old Adam
(Eph. 4:22), that is, the works of the curse, all uncleanness,
evil desires, pride, presumptuous conceitedness, lying,
cheating, strutting and boasting, evil speaking, guile, hatred,
envy, and the like. For, dear lambs, this is idolatry, and upon
such come the wrath and anger of God, and they shall not enter
into the kingdom of heaven, nor inherit the same, but
everlasting destruction and eternal damnation are their part
(if they do not become converted), in the lake which burneth
with fire and brimstone, which is the second death; where there
will be only weeping and gnashing of teeth, and where their
worm shall not die, but they shall be tormented forever and
ever, Eph. 5:6; iI Thess. 1:8, 9; Rev. 21:8; Mark 9:46.</p>

<p>O my dear lambs and sisters, depart therefore from evil, for
God shall hold judgment. without mercy upon all unbelieving and
disobedient men who have not obeyed the Word of the Lord, but
rejected and condemned it, yea, have persecuted and killed them
that would fear the Lord. For, my beloved, God spared not the
angels that sinned, but cast them down to hell, and delivered
them into chains of darkness, to be reserved unto judgment; and
spared not the old world, nor Sodom and Gomorrah, but turning
them into ashes, condemned them with an overthrow, making them
an ensample unto those that commit ungodliness. II Peter
2:4-6.</p>

<p>Therefore, my beloved sisters, let us not be weary in well
doing, though we must suffer a little for the name of the Lord.
Blessed are ye, and rejoice, says Christ, if you suffer for
righteousness' sake: for great is your reward in heaven. Matt.
5:10, 12. For, my beloved sisters, thus did they to the
prophets that were before us. Suffering and affliction in the
flesh are promised to all the Godfearing, as the apostle Paul
says, "All that will live godly in Christ Jesus shall suffer
persecution." II Timothy 3:12.</p>

<p>Mark, my beloved, how Christ was treated, who never had
sinned, neither was guile found in Hismouth; how He suffered,
and all this for our sakes, who was the Lord of lords, and the
King of kings. I Peter 2:22'; Rev. 19:16. O dear sisters,
consider Him that endured such contradiction of sinners against
Himself, who, when He was smitten, did not threaten, but
committed vengeance to God, who j udgeth righteously. Heb.
12:3; John 18:22; I Peter 2:23. And He that was rich, for our
sakes became poor; yea, He left His divine habitation, took
upon Him the form of a servant, and became obedient unto death,
even the death of the cross, and was more like a worm, than
like a man. II Corinthians 8:9; Phil. 2:7, 8; Ps. 22:6.
Therefore, God hath given Him a name which is above every name,
that in the name of Jesus every knee should bow, of them that
are in heaven and on earth. Phil. 2:9, 10. The apostle Peter
says, "Beloved brethren, forasmuch then as Christ hath suffered
for us, arm yourselves with the same mind; for hereunto we are
called, that we should follow his steps." I Peter 4:1; 2:21. As
also Christ says, "If they have called the master of the house Beelzebub, how
much more shall they call them of his household? If they have
persecuted me, they will also persecute you." Matt. 10:25; John
15:20. Mark, my dear sisters, whether more comes upon us, than
has been promised us. But all these things will they do unto
you for my name's sake, says Christ. Matt. 10:22; John 15:21.
And further, "The time cometh, that whosoever killeth you will
think that he doeth God service. And these things will they do
unto you, because they have not known the Father, nor me." John
16:2, 3. The Lord also says, "But these things have I told you,
that when the time shall come, ye may remember that I told you
of them." v. 4. See, my dear sisters, thus nothing comes upon
us, than what has been promised us, and what Christ Himself
had. Hence we must put off all that is a hindrance to the
salvation of our souls, namely, all the lusts of the flesh, all
the works of darkness (I John 2:16; Rom. 13:12; Col. 3:8), and
follow the crucified Jesus Christ, our Saviour, and obey Him;
for he that saith that he knoweth God, and keepeth not His
commandments, is a liar, and the truth is not in him; and he
that saith he abideth in Him ought himself also so to walk,
even as Christ walked. I John 2:4, 6. Mark, my sisters, fear
the Lord, take courage in the Word of the Lord, search
diligently the Scriptures, and entreat God the Lord, yea,
importune Him day and night with prayer and supplication, and
He will grant you to understand and to do what is necessary for
your salvation. As Christ said, that His Spirit shall teach us,
and we shall be taught of the Lord; for of ourselves we have
nothing but all manner of weakness.</p>

<p>Thus, my sisters, pray the Lord, who says, "Ask, and ye shall
receive; knock, and it shall be opened unto you; seek, and ye
shall find; seek the kingdom of God, and his righteousness, and
all that you need shall be added unto you." Matt. 7:7; 6:33.
Seek ye the Lord while He may be found, call</p>

</div><div id="822"> 

<p>ye upon Him while He is near; the Lord is so merciful toward
them who seek to fear Him (Isa. 55:6; Jonah 4:2), my sisters,
as He says Himself, "Come unto me, all ye that labor and are
heavy laden, and I will give you rest. Take my yoke upon you,
and learn of me; for I am meek and lowly in heart; and ye shall
find rest unto your souls. For my yoke is easy, and my burden
is light" (Matt. 11:28-30);"and his commandments are not
grievous."</p>

<p>See, my beloved, how the Lord calls us to repentance, hence
follow Him; for if one does what he can, the Lord is satisfied.
He can well preserve him that trusts in Him. Repent therefore
of your sins which you committed in your ignorance, before you
knew the Lord (I Tim. 1:13; I Peter 1: 14); mourn and weep to
the Lord, and He will have compassion on you. For the time past
of your life may suffice you to have wrought the will of the
Gentiles, when you knew not God, and were very far from Him,
when you walked in your lusts, in lasciviousness, in revelings,
banquetings, in strutting and boasting. I Peter 4:3. Therefore,
my sisters, since the Lord has revealed His truth to you, see
now that you serve Him faithfully, and fear not men, who kill
the body; for after that they have no more power, and all the
evil which they can do us is that they can help us into rest
through the great grace of the Lord. Matthew 10:28; Luke 12:4.
Confess Christ before men, and He will confess you before His
Father in heaven, and say, "Come, ye blessed, inherit the
kingdom prepared for you from the foundation of the world."
Matt. 10:32; 25:34. Hence be renewed in the spirit of your
mind, and put on the new man, which is created after Go-d. Put
away lies, and speak the truth. Be followers of God, as His
chosen children, and walk in love, in quietness, in kindliness,
in gentleness. Eph. 5:1, 2. Flee youthful lusts, and follow
righteousness, love and peace, with all them that call on the
Lord out of a pure heart; for the servants of the Lord must not
be contentious or quarrelsome but gentle unto all men. II Tim.
2:22, 24.</p>

<p>Adorn yourselves then, my sisters, with a chaste
conversation. I Peter 3:2, 3. Be gentle unto all men. Be
subject to your Lord, for He shall most gloriously reward you.
Choose rather to suffer a little affliction with God's
children, than to enjoy a little of the pleasures of this world
for a season; for the end of these is eternal perdition. Heb.
11: 25. Let us then help bear the reproach of the Lord; it will
through His great grace be most gloriously rewarded to us, when
He will say, "Well done, thou good and faithful servant; thou
hast been faithful over a few things, I will make thee ruler
over many things: enter thou into the joy of thy Lord." Heb.
13:13; Matt. 25:21.</p>

<p>Mark, my dear sisters, how gloriously it shall then be
rewarded to us. Hence make great haste to fear the Lord; for we
live today, but do not know whether we shall live tomorrow. Be
thereforewatchful to fear the Lord; take courage; life up the
hands that hang down, and the feeble knees; and take diligent
heed, for we know not when the Lord will come. Heb. 12:12;
Matt. 24:42. The day of the Lord draws nigh; it comes as a
thief in the night, when it is not expected. I Thess. 5:2. Look
therefore not to men, for there are few that fear the Lord.
Think how many there were when the whole world perished, and
yet there were but eight who feared the Lord. Also, how many
were saved when Sodom and Gomorrah perished. O think how few
entered into the promised land, only Joshua and Caleb; the rest
all perished because of their wickedness (even as it still goes
with many on account of their wickedness), and because they
would not believe God's words, but resisted, vexed and
persecuted the righteous; and if these will also not repent,
they shall all likewise perish, for all those are for an
example to us. Luke 13:3.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear sisters, take heed that it come not also
thus upon us; for men are punished for sin, as the prophet
says, "Your iniquities have separated between you and your God."
Isa. 59:2. Behold, thus men are condemned for their wickedness
and unbelief. Mark 16:16.</p>

<p>O my dear sisters, it is true there does some suffering come
upon us for the name of the Lord; but as the sufferings of
Christ abound in us, so our consolation also aboundeth by Jesus
Christ, and this little suffering is not worthy to be compared
with the glory which shall be revealed in us. II Cor. 1:5; Rom.
8:18. O dear friends, how delightful it will be there where the
mountains drop with sweet wine, and are covered with lilies and
roses; with all this joy the Lord will fill His children. II
Esd. 2:19. Hence let us fear and love the Lord without
wearying; for he that loves God will do good and hate evil. Ps.
34:14.</p>

<p>O dear lambs, eye hath not seen, nor ear heard, neither have
entered into the heart of man, the things which God hath
prepared for them that love Him and keep His commandments. I
Cor. 2:9; I John 5:3. Oh, consider what great joy there will
then be for them that have loved God and confessed Him in the
world. II Esd. 2:47. Oh, that this joy were rightly considered;
I think we would use more diligence to fear the Lord, and not
be afraid of men, that kill the body. Oh, how many there would
be who would follow the Lord's steps; for He is not willing
that any should perish, but that they should. repent, and that
He might save them. II Peter 3:9. But it is, my dear sisters,
as the prophet says, "With seeing eyes they see not, with
hearing ears they hear not, nor do they understand, for their
hearts are hardened, their ears they stop, and their eyes they
cover; lest they should see, or hear, or understand with their
heart." Isa. 6:9, 10; Matt. 13:14, 15; Acts 7:57.</p>

<p>Oh, mark, my dear lambs, whether it is not so also now; they
love and prefer much rather fighting, strutting, boasting,
banqueting, drinking, and to commit all kinds of abominations,
than to re-</p>

</div><div id="823"> 

<p>pent and that the Lord might save them. These are cursed
children, says the apostle; they forsake the right way, and
what they know naturally, as brute beasts, in those things they
corrupt themselves; they deceive and are deceived. I I Peter
2:14, 15; Jude 10; I I Tim. 3:13.</p>

<p>O dear lambs, turn from all the lusts of the world, for
their damnation slumbereth not. II Peter 2:3. Take heed, now
that the Lord has made known His truth to you that you obey Him
and walk as obedient children of light in love and peace. Eph.
1:13; 5:8. Love one another, and always admonish one another
with the word of the Lord. What is there that surpasses love?
(I Cor. 13) what greater joy can men have, than to love one
another. Always forbear one another, and accept everything in
good part, and the Lord will also love you. Eph. 4:2. Be kind
to one another. Give diligence to fear the Lord, and to search
His divine Word. Importune Him with supplication and prayer,
and fear not men, who today are lords, and tomorrow are eaten
by worms. The Lord will not forsake you, as you can well see in
my case, and also in the case of all those that have feared Him
with all their heart. The Lord preserves His own, even as He
says, "Can a woman forget her child? though she forget it, yet
will he not forget us." Isa. 49:15. Nay, who can pluck these
out of His hand whom His Father has given Him. John 10:28,
29.</p>

<p>O dear sisters, adorn yourselves, and put on the armor. Eph.
6:11. Gird to your side the sword of the Spirit, which is the
Word of God; be well shod, and have on the armor of
righteousness; and put on your head the helmet of salvation,
that you may be able to resist the subtle assaults of the
devil, since he walketh about day and night, as a roaring lion,
seeking whom he may devour. I Peter 5:8. Hence be followers of
God; the Lord will preserve you.</p>

<p>And know, my sisters, that the sixth day of this month, in
the afternoon, I was brought before N. N. (who I heard,
certainly came in the name of the procurator general, or of his
subordinates), and before the jailer and another man, where
they were drinking wine at the table. As I came before them the
jailer in the presence of them all, said to me, "Abraham, you must go before the court on Tuesday." His
wife, who was also present with them that served at the table,
said, "They have three weeks respite." The jailer said, "Because
the Duke of Alva is coming here, they must go through." He did
most of the speaking. I said that I was very well satisfied
with it. He asked me whether I was well satisfied. I
replied, "Yes, if it is the Lord's will, I am quite well
satisfied." They asked me, whether I made so little of that at
which Christ so greatly trembled, and said, "Father, if it be
possible, take away this cup from me." Mark 14:33, 36. They
further asked me, whether I did not wish that I were released,
and if the doors were open, whether I would not go out. I
said,"Yes," if they opened the doors I would go out; but as
thiswas not the case now, that I thanked the Lord for all that
He sends upon me. I also said that he, or they, had no power to
release me without the consent of the Duke of Alva, or the
like. They asked me whether I did not wish to break out. I
replied that if I knew I should bring him into trouble I would
have no desire to be out, or to break out. They said that.it
would cost him his neck. I said that if this was the case I did
not wish to be out. In the further progress of our conversation
they asked whether they should not be saved, or something
similar. I said, "The apostle John says: 'He that saith, I know
God, and keepeth not his commandments, is a liar."' I John 2:4.
I could not properly finish what I wanted to say, for they so
interrupted me, that I do not know myself what answer they gave
me. I also said that the apostle says that whoremongers,
drunkards, murderers, liars, proud, revilers, gluttons, and the
like men, shall not inherit the kingdom of God, and that they
have no God. I Cor. 6:9, 10. They again interrupted me, for the
Lord gave me a mouth to say so much, that they could not well
bear it. They said that what I said was true enough, if men
died therein; but if they had time yet to call upon the Lord
for forgiveness, then, they thought they should yet be saved. I
replied that it was too dangerous a thing to depend upon such a
calling; for frequently such entreaters for forgiveness, when
they recover, go into their old ways; and I opined that they
were probably such too. Then they again interrupted me, and I
admonished them, that they should repent and feel sorry for
their sins before they felt the day of their death approaching.
They asked whether we were all saved. I replied, that the Lord
promises salvation to them that do His will, and do not deny
Him, though they have to suffer much here for His name. Matt.
7:21. Of such the apostle says, "By grace are ye saved." Eph.
2:8. For though we do all that we can, we are still
unprofitable servants, and must rely upon the grace of God.
Luke 17:10; Acts 15:11.</p>

<p>Here I should have liked to quote some more scriptures, but
they interrupted me too much. I said that their hope was vain,
or something similar, and this because of their sins, as the
prophet says, "Your iniquities have separated between you and your God."
Then they became angry, especially the jailer, and I thought
they ought not to get angry. I further said that it now is as
the prophet says, "He that departeth from evil maketh himself a
prey," and, as Christ says, is hated by all men. Isa. 59:15;
Matt. 10:22. They all interrupted me again, and finally said
that I should be led away. And there sat a man there, who said
to the jailer, that he would first give me a drink. Then we had
many words again, but I could never quite properly finish what
I wanted to say, though I would have liked so much to finish
it, on account of an honest man that was there, who reproved
the jailer himself, because he became so angry. Then the jailer
brought me a glass of wine, and I thanked him,</p>

</div><div id="824"> 

<p>saying, "To your health!" He asked me why I did not say, "God
bless you." I replied, "We ought not to take the name of the
Lord in vain, as the drunkards and fornicators do." This made
them so angry that they had me led away without giving me the
drink. God be thanked and praised for His great grace that He
gives His own all that is necessary to their salvation. I am
told, my sisters, that they only did this to see whether I
would not depart from the Lord; yet I know that they did not
once urge me to forsake my faith.</p>

<p>Excuse this simple letter. I greatly long for the day of our
deliverance; I was so rejoiced the night that I heard that we
were so near our deliverance., that for joy, the tears streamed
from my eyes. The Lord be praised for His great grace. We trust
to await our time with patience. They perhaps thought to
frighten me by it; but I rejoice in it, God be praised, who
gives me such strength. O my sisters, should one not rejoice at
the prospect of so soon being delivered from all sorrow through
the grace of the Lord? O that we were fit for it, what a great
joy this would be for me! Yet I expect it through the Lord's
great grace, though I am not worthy of it. Oh, that matters
were so far, that the fiery furnace were prepared. Oh, that it
were so far, that I were standing in the strait gate, where
flesh and blood must be left behind; then it should soon be
over.</p>

<p>O my dear sisters, I am of such good cheer, and I receive
such strength from the Lord, that I can not express it, praise
be to Him forever .for His great grace which He shows me. I
find it to be true: he that trusts in the Lord alone has in his
sufferings such joy of heart, that no one can know it, save he
that experiences it.</p>

<p>Farewell; I commend you to God in grace. Pray God, the Lord
for me; I will do the same for you.</p>

<p>Written by me your weak brother,</p>

<p class="c5">ABRAHAM PICOLET.</p><br />

<h1>TIJS JEURIAENSS AND JAN CLAESS, A. D. 1569</h1> 

<p>In this dark bloody reign of antichrist two other pious
brethren fell into the hands of the tyrants, one of whom was a
minister of the Word, named Tijs Jeuriaenss, residing in North
Holland, at Karop in Waterland. The name of the other was Jan
Claess, born near Wesop, and residing in the same town; he was
still a single man, about twentyfive years of age. And as said
Tijs Jeuriaenss had gone to Muyen near Amsterdam, to serve the
church of God in the Word, while said Jan Claess in company
with some others went to Muyen to hear the exhortation. Thus he
was apprehended with Tijs Jeuriaenss, and brought to the castle
of Muyen, where they remained in imprisonment for about half a
year, and were then sent to the Hague, where they were also
kept confined for about half a year, and were then sent back to
Muyen. at which place after about three months both were
sentenced to be strangled and burnt at the stake.This was so
done, and they were burnt black in their faces with reed, and
were each put at a stake outside of the dyke, in the reed, at
Muyen, for food to the birds. And as these pious witnesses of
God suffered all this, not on account of having committed any
crime (upon which alone the secular power has a right to visit
punishment), but only for the truth of the Word of God, and a
good conscience, they are under the blessed promise of God, who
has said, "Blessed are they which are persecuted for
righteousness' sake: for theirs is the kingdom of heaven."
Matt. 5:10. And as they have here for Christ's sake delivered
up their bodies unto death, for a living sacrifice holy and
acceptable unto God, in confirmation of the truth, so they
shall receive these their mortal and corruptible bodies again
in the resurrection of the just, in eternal, glorious
immortality, and shall live forever with Christ, whom they
confessed here.</p>

<p>The particulars of this offering we have received from the
lips of Symon Fijts, teacher of the church of God in Tessel,
who was present in a chamber at their apprehension, and visited
them in prison, and with his own eyes witnessed their steadfast
departure from this world.</p>

<p>This Tijs Jeuriaenss was a very zealous follower of Christ,
who in his long imprisonment also wrote many excellent letters
for the consolation of the God-fearing, some of which have long
before this been published in a separate book; treating, among
other things: of the bringing in and incarnation of Jesus
Christ, and, again, of His departure; and also of the free will
of man. Of these letters we, in order to avoid prolixity,
present two to the reader; they are as follows</p>

<p>The manifold grace of our God, and the abounding, deep love
of His Son Jesus Christ, with the unsearchable, rich mercy of
our dear Lord Jesus Christ, who hath translated us into the
kingdom'of His dear Son and delivered us from this present evil
world, according to the will of God and our Father, and the
communion, love, joy, comfort and mighty power of His Holy
Spirit, we wish to all dear brethren and sisters, and all our
fellow believers; also much wisdom, patience, a valiant faith,
immovable hope, the breastplate, helmet and armor of our God,
certain victory, the triumphant, twoedged sword of the Spirit,
and the power of God through the blood of the Lamb. To this
high God and Lord, and His blessed Son be power, strength,
might, praise, honor, and glory, forever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>I desire out of a pure heart with the prophet Daniel,
imprisoned in Babylon, from pure love, to open the windows of
my heart toward the pleasant city of my God, Jerusalem, now to
look lovingly upon her with a glad heart, and to show her a
joyful face out of pure love; and thus to turn the eyes of
pleasant desire to her, and to show her out of pure love a
pleasant, glad and joyful countenance, with the sound of
rejoicing; for Jerusalem signifies, vision of peace. This
adorned and pleasant</p>

</div><div id="825"> 

<p>city of Jerusalem was shown by the angel of God to the
apostle John. Rev. 21:10. He saw it in the Spirit and in a
vision, with a joyful heart, and confessed that Jerusalem is a
vision of peace, and therefore it cannot be beheld but through
the vision of peace. John saw her in a vision, and discerned
her by the Spirit of truth; hence no one cap now see her but by
the vision of the Spirit, and through the Spirit of truth. This
city has the glory of God; her streets are like unto gold, yea,
of pure gold. Verse 21. Here is the river of life, clear as
crystal. 22:1. In short, here is the pleasant tree, which
yields her fruit every month; the leaves of it are for healing,
for they are fruits of life. This city has high walls, twelve
foundations, and twelve gates. 21:12, 19. She has also twelve
watchmen, with twelve trumpets, the pleasant sound and glorious
voice of which rejoice my soul. This is that joyful, pleasant
and sweet voice which delighted John; for it is like the voice
of harpers playing on their harps. 14:2. The sound and voice of
all kinds of music in Babylon caused the Babylonians to kneel
down and worship the high image (Dan. 3:7); but this sound
causes my soul to rejoice with the joy of the Holy Ghost. This
city is far more glorious than all other cities, for her
builder and maker is God. Heb. 11:10. This city comes down from
heaven, prepared as a bride adorned for her husband. And I
heard a voice out of heaven saying, Behold, the tabernacle of
God; for God will dwell with them, and He shall wipe away all
tears from their eyes. Rev. 21:2, 3, 4. Behold, here is the
spiritual Solomon of the spiritual tabernacle or temple. Here
is the spiritual sea which is carried by twelve oxen. I Kings
7:23. In short, here everything is spiritual; according to the
request of Peter, lively stones in this living or spiritual
temple or house. I Peter 2:5. Here the golden vessels filled
with incense are brought to the altar of the Lord. These golden
vessels filled with incense are poured out before the Lord, for
they are the prayers of the saints. Rev. 5:8. Thus everything
is renewed in spirit and in truth. For here is the spiritual
paradise planted or founded by God Himself. Here men eat of the
tree of life. Here is the spiritual Adam, of which the literal
was a figure, after whose image all Christians strive, till
they are like unto Him in weakness, for they must be conformed
to the image of His Son. Romans 5:14; 8:29. Here has also the
spiritual Eve and bride of this spiritual husband come forth,
through the spiritual sleep, and is thus flesh of His flesh,
and bone of His bones. Gen. 2:23;. Eph..5:30. There is also
here, in spirit and in truth, the spiritual ark seen by John.
Rev. 11:19. Here we enter in a spiritual manner into the ark of
God, through the baptism of Jesus Christ, inwardly prompted to
it by fire and the Holy Ghost, and outwardly all the evil
carnal lusts washed with water; yea, baptized into his death.
Rom.. 6:3. For as by the flood all flesh perished, so must now
also perish, through baptism. all lust of -the flesh, and die
without .theark, which is represented by the former. I Peter
3:20, 21. Here is the spiritual dove, which brought the
spiritual olive branch into the ark of the Lord; for as the
dove brought an olive branch in her mouth into Noah's ark, to
show that the flood was abating, so the Holy Ghost came down in
the form of a dove upon Christ, to show that He was the Son of
God, as had been said to John the Baptist, "Upon whom thou shalt see the Spirit descending, he it is."
John 1:33. In the second place, to show that the flood or
punishment had departed, and joy and glad tidings were
come.</p>

<p>Behold, this is the spiritual dove, as Esdras says, "Of all
the fowls thou hast chosen thee one dove." II Esd. 5:26. And
Christ Jesus says to His disciples, "Be harmless as doves."
Matt. 10:16. These doves bear the pleasant olive branch, which
is Christ, to all those that with Noah desire and apprehend it
by faith. I desire once more, with the eyes of love, and with
the vision of peace, to turn my heart and mind with John to the
glorious woman (Rev. 12:1) since the Lord has shown her to me
through faith and the vision of His Word; for her beauty has
drawn me, her loveliness inflames me, I am inclined to her, she
has with her sweet singing conquered my heart, she has
captivated me with her lovely eyes, she has bound me with
heavenly bonds, for her bond is the girdle of truth, the bond
of peace and love. Ephesians 6: 14; 4:3; Col. 3:14.</p>

<p>I have on account of her forgotten my father's house. How
charming and lovely is this woman, how glorious is her raiment
I This woman. has a crown of twelve stars upon her head; she is
also clothed with the sun, and the moon is under her feet, and
two wings also are given her to escape from the dragon. This
woman is spiritual, and hence she must be viewed with spiritual
eyes; all the proud and vain-glorious cannot behold her beauty;
she is clothed with the sun, with the clear sun of
understanding and of truth, says the Scripture.</p>

<p>I rejoice with John, for he says, "Let us be glad and
rejoice, [and give honor to him:] for the marriage of the Lamb
is come, and his wife hath made herself ready. And to her was
granted that she should be arrayed in fine linen, clean and
white: for the fine linen is the righteousness of saints."
Revelation 19:7, 8.</p>

<p>Whosoever now hears this woman falls in love with her, and
he who lovingly turns his eyes and face to her, and beholds her
beauty, is captivated by her loveliness, for she is the Queen
of the Son of the Most High God. This woman pours out the
unadulterated sweet wine which comes from the true vine. Over
this woman or city of Jerusalem I will rejoice with David and
say, "I had rather be a door keeper in the house of my God, than
to dwell in the tents of wickedness." Ps. 84:10. O Jerusalem,
thou city of God, glorious things are spoken of thee; for the
Lord loveth the gates of Zion more than all the dwellings of
Jacob. Ps. 87:3, 2. 0 Je-</p>

</div><div id="826"> 

<p>rusalem, thou most beautiful, most pleasant, and most
glorious city, above all royal cities 1 O Jerusalem, thou
pleasant city and vision of peace, over thee is the King of
Peace, the Mighty God, and Lord is His name. Isa. 9:6. Behold
these are the pleasant looks which mine eyes cast upon thee;
these are the windows of joy through which I behold thee. Once
more I must through the window of the divine truth view thy
glory; mine eyes and face are thus fixed upon thee, that the
tears run down my cheeks. I cannot turn mine eyes and face from
thee; though the winds blow into my face, that the tears flow
from mine eyes, I will dry them with the beautiful, lovely,
pure, and white handkerchief with which my most beloved has
given me to dry them, that I may behold her so much the more
clearly. Behold, thus I will now with the beloved prophet David
turn my heart's delight to thee, and thus give thee the desire
of my heart, and say, "Jerusalem is builded as a city that is
compact together: whither the tribes go up, the tribes of the
Lord, unto the testimony of Israel, to give thanks unto the
name of the Lord. For there are set thrones of judgment, the
thrones of the house of David. Pray for the peace of Jerusalem;
they shall prosper that love thee. Peace be within thy walls,
and prosperity within thy palaces. For my brethren and
companions' sakes, I will now say, Peace be within thee." Ps.
122:3$. Peace be with you all. Keep thy foot when thou goest to
the house of God. Concerning this house read Isaiah 2; Micah
4.</p>

<p>We poor prisoners in the Lord, and bound of Jesus Christ,
for the testimony of our God, and for the incontrovertible
truth of our dear Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ; also severed
and banished for still holding fast to the truth and to this
testimony; wish salvation, joy, gladness, love, comfort,
strength, and the fellowship, operation and power of the Holy
Ghost to all our dear brethren and sisters, that are rejected
and oppressed by the proud, for the true knowledge of Jesus
Christ and the fear of God, for a proof of their severe
blindness and pride, and for a proof of patience and pure fear
of God in all of you; in short, for a proof, that through the
power of our God you are kept in the faith, and also for a
confirmation of His Word, that the gates and fiends of hell
cannot cast you down. May the strong God with His mighty power
and word henceforth keep us all through the abundant riches of
His grace; to Him be for it praise, honor, glory, power, might,
and strength in glory, forever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>Out of pure, brotherly, unfeigned love, and from the inmost
of our soul and the depth of our heart, with a pure conscience
toward all banished, oppressed, burdened, and distressed souls,
I write this simple and plain letter to you, out of a pure
heart, as a drop of morning dew, dropping down for the
refreshing, cooling and comforting of your hearts; hence I
beseech you with all my strength, yea, from the inmost depth of
my heart, and bythe cross and sufferings of our Lord Jesus
Christ, and also by His bitter death and His precious blood
shed for us all, discern and comprehend it with pure, clear
eyes, ears and hearts. O brethren and sisters, behold and
consider diligently from what the mighty power, Spirit and Word
of the Lord have delivered you. The hand of the Lord has
powerfully delivered you, that you might not be punished with
the severe darkness and blindness into which many are fallen.
God has also well preserved you from all the plagues and
sorceries of Egypt, while so many now lose their
birthright.</p>

<p>O brethren and sisters, take heed to it. Because you firmly
and confidently hope in the living God; therefore the
consuming, and devouring, severe fire (which devours all around
it) has not been able to devour or consume you, though all
heat, cunning, and craftiness were used in Babylon's fiery
furnace; yea, my friends, though the lions of Babylon gnashed
their teeth, you have, like Daniel, not been harmed by them,
God be forever praised for it. Hence, my most beloved brethren
and sisters, whom I love with all my heart, from this, and much
more, the power of the Lord has preserved you, for through His
victory you have triumphed, and shall triumph, till you receive
the end of your faith, even the salvation of your souls. Amen.
I Peter 1:9.</p>

<p>I beseech you all with an unfeigned faith, open your heart
once, and consider and lay to heart in spirit and in truth
these words of the prophet, "Your brethren that hated you, that cast you out for my
name's sake, said, Let the Lord be glorified; but he shall
appear to your joy, and they shall be ashamed, saith the Lord."
Ps. 66:5.</p>

<p>In another place' he says, "I sat not in the 'assembly of
mockers, nor rejoiced; I sat alone because of thy hand: for
thou hast filled me with indignation." Jer. 15:17.</p>

<p>In the third place, mark with an attentive heart the words
of the prophet, "I will also leave in the midst of thee (saith
the Lord) an afflicted and poor people, and they shall trust in
the name of the Lord. The remnant of Israel shall not do
iniquity, nor speak lies; neither shall a deceitful tongue be
found in their mouth: for they shall feed and lie down, and
none shall make them afraid. Sing, O daughter of Zion; shout, O
Israel; be glad and rejoice with all the heart, O daughter of
Jerusalem. The Lord bath taken away the judgments, he bath cast
out thine enemy: the King of Israel, even the Lord, is in the
midst of thee: thou shalt not see evil any more. In that day it
shall be said to Jerusalem, Fear thou not: and to Zion, Let not
thy hands be slack. The Lord thy God in the midst of thee is
mighty; he will save, he will rejoice over thee with joy; he
will rest in his love, he will joy over thee with singing. I
will gather them that are sorrowful for the solemn assembly,
who are of thee, to whom the reproach of it was a burden. Be
hold, at that tune I will undo all that afflict thee."
Zephaniah 3:12-19; Isa. 43; 41:14.</p>

</div><div id="827"> 

<p>The prophet Ezekiel also says, "Because with lies ye have
made the heart of the righteous sad, whom I have not made sad,
and strengthened the hands of the wicked, that he should not
return from his wicked way, that I should save his life."
Ezekiel 13:22; Jer. 23:14.</p>

<p>See, my worthy, chosen brethren and sisters, here you have
comfort and.joy in these and other, similar passages, in which
you can with the afflicted in Israel find joy and gladness;
hence these passages belong to you. For it has been done out of
the true fear of God, and because we feared in our conscience,
we renounced them (God be praised), according to the word of
the prophet (Jer. 15:17 ) and the teaching of the apostle; for
I declare. before the Lord, and before His angels and hosts,
yea, that I am ready with all my heart, and desirous, by the
help and grace of the Lord, to testify to this with my flesh,
blood and death. This is the solid ground of truth, firm and
incontrovertible. I doubt not that they are wrong, and we,
through the grace of God, right. Thus I longingly expect to,
testify with a joyful mind to their wrong, even unto death, and
also to confirm my faith and little gift. May the Lord
strengthen me and my fellow prisoner. But we must first drink
the bitter cup with fear and trembling. Oh, that we might taste
it! for I have already given myself to,Him who was first given
for me.</p>

<p>Hence, I further pray for the sake of the fellowship and
unity of the Spirit, that everyone love the brotherhood. I Pet.
2:17: O brethren and' sisters, take heed thereto with a pure
heart and, faithful love; for we have all been made to drink
into one Spirit, and are baptized into one body. I Cor. 12 13.
Therefore serve one another diligently in love cleave to
Christ's body, abide with your members, and neither separate
nor divide. Let-each esteem other better than themselves, and
you.will remain together with peace and joy; (Phil. 2:3); the
merciful God grant this to you and us.all. Amen.</p>

<p>In the third place, I further pray by the power of the
Spirit, and by the conqueror Jesus Christ, yea, I beseech you
by the love of the Father toward us,-the words are full of joy,
spirit and gladness, "As my heavenly Father hath loved me, so have I loved you:
continue ye in my love." John 15:9. . O brethren and friends,
take heed to it; love must be according to the example of
Christ firm and sure, for therein love is revealed, known and
shown to us, yea, herein love stands fast; declared by the
death, blood and confession of His Son. O friends, my most
beloved, this is the true measuring reed, according to John's
writing. Rev. 11:1. Consider this in the depth of your
heart.</p>

<p>In the fourth place, I further beseech your love, consider
with an attentive heart, and inwardly and outwardly, with a
live, sober mind, prove, measure and correct yourselves with
the Word of God, and follow and hold fast the same. Oh, hold
fast to the Word of God, and you will never be deceived.</p>

<p>In the fifth place, I beseech all my brethren andsisters, as
one that loves you with all his heart, if you would have your
souls saved, receive the warning, of the Holy Ghost, that in
the latter times many shall depart from the faith, giving heed
to seducing spirits, I Tim. 4:1.</p>

<p>O brethren and chosen sisters, consider, and learn to know
the lying spirits. Oh, diligently try the spirits by faith, and
the knowledge of the Word of God. I John 4:1. Distinguish the
good and the evil consciences of men. Oh, discern and learn to
know with diligence them whose minds are corrupt, also who have
the form of godliness, but deny the power of the Spirit. These
and other points despise not; let them never depart from your
heart, but hold them fast according to the Word of God; try all
spirits, and measure them therewith, and you will know what
form or appearance they have. O brethren, beware with a pure
fear of God, beware every way, that no one set up liis reason
or conscience as a head, and relapse into his old natural
state. But much rather let the heart and conscience grow and
increase according to the Word of God. Let your understanding
be of the unadulterated milk, and of the wine from the pure
vine Christ. Refresh your heart with the living waters. Hold
fast to the fountain and rock unto death.</p>

<p>Lastly, I beseech your love yet, by the crying of Jesus
Christ, by the weeping of the 'apostle Paul (Phil. 3:18), and
by the many tears of the prophet Jeremiah, diligently to attend
to and consider, and, with a living and working faith to hold
fast to and not depart from the solid ground, and immovable
foundation in Sion. I Pet. 2:6. My brethren, we longingly
expect to have to go hence; help us, therefore, to contend for
the faith (Jude 3) and to defend it unto death. We hope by His
power and strong grace, help and consolation to go before you,
if it is His divine will. We have already given our bodies to
Him who bought our souls with His precious blood. T Cor. 6:20;
I Peter 1:19.</p>

<p>Thus, my dear brethren and sisters, we will herewith bid you
adieu, and take leave for this time; if it were the will of the
Lord, I would from the heart that it might, be our final
farewell and adieu till in life eternal-His divine will be done
with us.</p>

<p>We greet all brethren and sisters that love us in the,
faith, especially those that are banished, out of a, pure,
brotherly, unfeigned, sound love, with the mighty power, the
word and peace of our dear Lord Jesus Christ, till in His
eternal glory. Amen.</p>

<p>Further, do not forget us poor, miserable, weak fellow
members, and receive our letter in good part, it is written out
of love. We would have written more, but it is now not
necessary; besides, we may soon be debarred from it, for we are
chained together like horses. We expect, as the bailiff says, a
letter from the stadtholder as to what he shall then do with
us.</p>

<p>The Spirit of peace, love, joy, peace; comfort and grace be
upon all the God-fearing, especially do we wish much good to
the banished, who, for the, testimony of the truth, through
their faith, have</p>

</div><div id="828"> 

<p>overcome the wicked and still overcome in Christ. The Spirit
of peace be with your spirit. Amen.</p>

<p>Written on the 15th day of our imprisonment. I hope that
through the grace of God we are bound with a strong chain of
love; love abides steadfast unto death. By me, TIJs
JEURIAENSS.</p>

<p>I beseech all my brethren and sisters, and you, as a
prisoner in the Lord, by the mercies of God, and by the coming
of our Lord Jesus Christ, and by our gathering together unto
Him, that ye be not soon shaken in mind, or be troubled neither
by spirit nor by word, nor by letter as from us. II
Thessalonians 2:1, 2. This is the faithful warning of Paul to
his friends.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER LETTER OF TIJS JEURIAENSS, WRITTEN<br />
IN PRISON TO THE FRIENDS IN EDAM, A. D. 1569</h2> 

<p>My dear brethren and sisters, one with us in our most holy
Christian faith, I wish you the weapons of light, to fight
against the works of darkness; yea, from the depth of my heart
and my inmost soul I wish you new tidings, glad news, an
evangelical greeting, grace, mercy, peace, longsuffering, love,
comfort, wisdom and steadfastness; yea, from God our heavenly
Father all His heavenly treasures and riches, through Jesus
Christ, our Giver and Distributor, our Prophet; great Apostle,
and High Priest, our Ground, Foundation and Cornerstone in
Sion, our Trumpet, and Horn of salvation in the house of David
and camp of Israel, our Way, Door, Truth and Life, our
Reconciler, Mediator and Advocate, our Peace, Atonement and
Righteousness, our paschal Dove and paschal Lamb, our Sun,
Light, Morning Star, our delightful Emmanuel, Peace, Comfort,
and Captain of the faith, our Shepherd, David and Solomon
according to the spirit, our Comforter and Rejoicer, our joy,
Gladness, Might and Strength, our Fortress, Castle, Wall and
Strength, our Hero, Warrior and Conqueror, who led captivity
captive, deprived death of its might, power, and strength, that
is, Him that had the power of death, brought life and
immortality to light, spoiled principalities and powers,
triumphed over them in Himself, broke down the middle wall of
partition, blotted out the handwriting and nailed it to the
cross, fulfilled the promises, satisfied the law, confirmed the
testament with His death, and sealed it with His blood, and
renewed all things, and put them under His feet, at the mercy
seat upon the ark of God, above the cherubim, in the most holy
place. that is, the head of His church forever. Amen. Eph. 4:
8; Heb. 2:14; Col. 2:15; Eph. 2:14; Matt. 5:17; Heb. 9:17; Rom.
3:25; Ex. 25:17; Eph. 1:22.</p>

<p>Since you are often in our hearts, dear and in God beloved,
sanctified brethren and sisters, we cannot well forbear to
visit your love, in spirit, through love, with our unworthy
letters. For though according to the flesh, we are not present
together, we are nevertheless together in spirit, and we
rejoice in our bonds, afflicted in the flesh, butjoyful and
delighted in spirit, when we consider your love, piety,
brotherly love and godliness, the steadfastness of your faith,
the assurance, constancy and confidence of your mind, your
steadfastness and the obedience of the Gospel, your boldness of
Jesus Christ, and the strengthening of our God through the
power of His Holy Spirit. Hence the Word of God abides in you,
and you have overcome the wicked one, which no one can do
except he remain grounded, rooted and fixed in God through
Jesus Christ, and God, again must dwell, walk and rest in Him
through Christ, that is: there must be the Word and the
wholesome knowledge of God, and an unconquerable love, hope and
faith; and this is the power of the Spirit, irrefutable and
unconquerable, in the firm foundation stone in Sion, which is
to the unbelieving, a hard touchstone of stumbling and offence.
Hence, whosoever shall fall on it shall be broken and crushed;
but on whomsoever it shall fall, it will grind him to powder,
that is, destroy him. I John 2:14; Eph. 3:17; I I Cor. 6:16; I
Cor. 13:13; I Pet. 2:6; Matt. 21:44.</p>

<p>Hence our unworthy letter is not especially written to your
love, nor to teach or admonish your love. Oh, no, you have the
anointing of Him that is holy, and hence you are already taught
and enlightened in God, through Jesus Christ, by the Holy
Ghost. I John 2:27; John 6:45. Besides, you have and know the
holy criptures which can instruct and exhort you unto
godliness. But we unworthy ones pray and wish day and night for
the holy God and King of eternity, the Father of light and
mercy, to strengthen and confirm through His unfathomable
grace, and by His Holy Spirit, us and you in the spirit of our
minds, according to the heart, and that Jesus Christ according
to the inner man may dwell in our hearts by faith, that we,
being rooted and grounded, steadfast and immovable from the
hope of the Gospel, may be able to know and comprehend with all
the saints of God, and with all Christian believers and chosen
children of God, what is the abundance of His power and might,
the riches of His glory, and His unfathomable grace, yea, the
height, depth, breadth and length, and to know the love of God
and Christ, which passes all knowledge, wisdom and
understanding, that He would herein and hereby fill you with
all the fullness of God. Eph. 4:23; 2:16.</p>

<p>See, my affectionately beloved, sanctified brethren and
sisters, who are partakers of the kind and nature of our
common, most holy, Christian faith, I say, of the kind and
nature of God, through the regeneration of God, the heavenly
Father, by His incorruptible seed and Word, through the
resurrection of Jesus Christ, in heavenly places, in the
illumination and brightness of the heavenly glory, in newness
of spirit, in the mind of Jesus Christ, by the sprinkling of
the blood of Jesus Christ unto obedience in the sanctification
of the spirit. II Peter 1:4; I Peter 1:2. Hence we have all
been made to drink into one spirit, and are baptized into</p>

</div><div id="829"> 

<p>one body, and sealed by one Spirit unto the day of our
redemption. lI (:or. 12:13; Eph. 4:30. Where this thus exists,
there is certainly the nature of the Christian faith and the
nature of God, without which faith and regeneration cannot be,
exist, or be named; but where this is found and thus exists in
full power of the spirit, as said, there are without doubt the
blessing of God, the dew of the Holy Ghost and of the heavenly
benediction, and the rain of righteousness, in all manner of
fruitfulness, growth and incense in the knowledge of God and
the mind of Jesus Christ. Ah, there is Abraham's holy seed of
peace, the children of the promise, not of the flesh, nor of
the law, but of the Spirit, in Isaac sanctified, justified, and
blessed with all spiritual blessings in new and heavenly places
in Jesus Christ. Rom. 9:8; Eph. 1:3. And therefore they have,
and there pertain to them the adoption, the law, the service of
God, the glory, the testaments, and the promises that were made
to the fathers, which belonged to Israel according to their
birthright, that is, according to the flesh, but who on account
of their unbelief were rejected, and failed in them. Rom. 9:4.
But the spiritual Israel of God, namely, the seed of Abraham,
the children of the promise, have obtained it by their faith,
and have attained to, and been called and elected thereunto
through grace; they have contrary to nature been grafted into
the good olive tree, and have through grace become partakers of
the root and sap. Rom. 9:8; 11:20-24. And this is now the great
mystery of God, and the unsearchable grace of Jesus Christ, the
mystery of the Holy Ghost, above the wisdom of the Jews, and
the understanding of the Greeks, as Paul-says, and signifies to
us. Eph. 3-:3-5.</p>

<p>Yes, my chosen friends, and sanctified of God, what a great
benefit, love and mercy of God our Lord and Saviour Jesus
Christ is this, namely, that we who were not a people, are now
the people of God; we who had no hope in the covenants of
promise are now by faith in Jesus Christ ingrafted and
partakers and fellow heirs of His promises. I Pet. 2:10; Eph.
2:12. Behold, thus acts and works the only wise and eternal
God, who in, with and by His wisdom measured and fathomed all
things, and in the twinkling of an eye looked over and knew
them from eternity to eternity; I say, who through the eyes of
His wisdom, in the twinkling of an eye, looked over and knew
all things in eternity from everlasting to everlasting. Oh, how
unsearchable are His judgments, and His ways past finding out I
For who hath known the mind of the Lord? or who hath been His
counselor? [or who hath first given to Him, and it shall be
recompensed unto Him again?J For of Him, and through Him, and
to Him, are all things: to whom be glory forever. Amen. Rom.
11:33-36.</p>

<p>This holy, unsearchable and only wise God wrought all things
according to His wisdom, purpose, and predetermined counsel,
first in figures, promises, types and shadows, unto the
bringing inof a better hope, by the which we draw nigh unto
God. Heb. 7:19. For the figures, shadows and heavenly types
point us to the true substance and perfect truth itself in
Christ Jesus, which especially the Epistle to the Hebrews tells
us, which also so gloriously speaks of the advent or bringing
in of Jesus Christ, and of His departure and perfection, as may
most satisfactorily be seen in great power and glory, which is
very pleasant and delightful to read, consider and lay to
heart, Heb. 1: 6; 5:9. Happy he who therein has his joy and
delight, who considers it in the depth of his heart, and
sincerely treasures it up.</p>

<p>For since God in His wisdom and foresight has wrought and
ordered all things to man's profit and salvation, and in order
to signify and show something else, mark well, the priests in
the law were made priests without an oath, and this because of
weakness and imperfection, and because death did not suffer
them to continue, that is, the law made. nothing perfect, nor
could it; with all its services and sacrifices, bring or give
us perfection, salvation, or righteousness; for they could not
make or become perfect in conscience, who worshiped; for if
there had been a law given which could make perfect,
righteousness would be by the law, and thus no better means
would have been sought or used; and therefore the law has an
end because of imperfection, and terminates in Christ. Heb. 7;
Romans 10:4. For the word of the oath which was since the law,
makes the Son our high priest perfected for evermore. Heb.
7:28. And He ever liveth to make intercession for our sins. v.
25. For He has neither beginning of days, nor end of life. v.
3. He dieth no more; death hath no more dominion over Him; for
in that He died, He died unto sin once (Rom. 6:9), that is, He
became a propitiation and sacrifice for sins, which is perfect,
constant and perpetual. I John 2:2. For as the priests had to
have compassion on them that sinned and erred through
ignorance, because they themselves were also compassed with
infirmity; therefore our high priest became a poor, passive and
mortal man, that He might have compassion on our sins and
infirmity, because He became Himself like unto us in all
things, and was tempted like as we are, yet without sin, as may
be seen everywhere in the New Testament. Hebrews 5:2; 4:15.</p>

<p>For since Adam was unclean in his nature, and with his seed
and generation lay in sin and death, because of transgression,
and the law of God required a pure, undefiled, holy, and
blameless sacrifice for sin and transgression, that is,
satisfaction for transgression and propitiation for sin, in
order to help and save men; therefore the pure, undefiled and
immaculate Word of the heavenly Father, out of great love and
compassion had to come down here from hieh heaven, and,
according to the promises of the prophets and the word of the
angel, be conceived of the Holy Ghost in Mary, and, through the
power of the Most High, be born of the holy virgin, and be
holy, innocent, undefiled,</p>

</div><div id="830"> 

<p>and separate from sinners, if He according to the law was to
be a pure, holy, undefiled, and blameless sacrifice for sin. if
the law was to be fulfilled, the sins propitiated, the
sacrifice made, and our high priest made perfect as such for
evermore by the oath. And He ever lives to make intercession
for our sins; for such a high priest became us. Rom. 8:34.</p>

<p>Hence this was the greatest joy on earth that has ever been
heard, seen and received: that God came and was seen and
manifested in the flesh. I Timothy 3:16. The Lamb of God, which
beareth and taketh away the sins of the world (John 1</p>

<p>29), came upon earth, in human form and in the likeness of
sinful flesh (Rom. 8:3), taught the kingdom of God (Mark 1:15),
preached the Gospel of His peace and the word of His
reconciliation (Luke 4:18; Ephesians 2:16), and declared life
and His grace, the good Gospel news, the trumpet sound, to
gather Israel to Jerusalem out of every land, to keep the
feasts of Easter, Pentecost, and of Tabernacles, one new moon
and Sabbath after another (Ex. 12:16; Isa. 66:23), as the
prophet says, "Hearken, thou chosen daughter of Zion, and ye
holy inhabitants of Jerusalem, what joyful sound and shouting
is in thy streets! O what joyful and good news and glad tidings
are in the camp of Israel, to gather the heavenly manna, which
lies there, giving delight and sweetness." Ex. 16:16; Wisd.
16:21. But there had to be a golden pot in which the holy manna
of God was preserved (Ex. 16:33), so there must be a clean
flask and cruse in which the spiritual waters of eternal life
must be gathered. And he that eats of this heavenly bread, and
drinks of this water of life, shall live forever, and shall
neither hunger nor thirst any more; for it shall be in him a
well of living water springing up into everlasting life, John
6:51; 4:14.</p>

<p>See now, my dear and in God beloved, sanctified brethren and
sisters, partakers of His promise, [fellow] citizens [with the
saints], and of the household of God, built upon the foundation
of the prophets and apostles, yea, a habitation of God through
the Spirit, a spiritual house and holy temple, and lively
stones, a royal generation, and an holy priesthood. Heb. 2:12;
Eph. 2:19-22; I Pet. 2:5, 9. I say, holy inhabitants of
Jerusalem, who have a free and open fountain for sin and
uncleanness (Zech. 13:1); who completely and entirely place
their hope in the grace of God, which is brought to you through
the Gospel sent from heaven, which things the angels of God
desire to look into. I Peter 1:13, 12. Who ascended up far
above all thrones and heavens, and who is set above all power,
might and dominion, in this and in the world to come. Eph.
4:10; 1:21. But many neither understand nor regard this life,
nor do they heed this great love and grace of God, and
therefore they are offended in their heart because of their
unbelief, and hardened through the deceitfulness of sin, and
thus a root of bitterness springs up, bywhich many are defiled
(Heb. 12:15), as has now been seen and found in the case of so
many; and they are thus greatly embittered and defiled, that
all medicines, yea, the flowing waters that issue from God's
sanctuary, which can sweeten and heal everything, cannot heal
or sweeten these pools and marshes, but they are given to salt,
as the prophet says. Ezek. 47:1, 11. How unwholesome and barren
is this water, which cannot be healed or made fruitful by the
strength of the salt from the new cruse, through the power of
the word of the holy prophet. II Kings 2:20-22.</p>

<p>Ah, these bitter waters cannot be made sweet by the pleasant
tree (Ex. 15:25); for he that drinks thereof must die, as John
says in his Revelation, "There fell a great star from heaven,
burning as it were a lamp, and it fell upon the third part of
the rivers, and upon the fountains of waters; and the name of
the star is called Wormwood: and the third part of the waters
became wormwood; and many men died of the waters because they
were made bitter. And the fourth angel sounded, and the third
part of the sun was smitten, and the third part of the moon,
and the third part of the stars; so as the third part of them
was darkened, and the day shone not for a third of it, and the
night likewise." Rev. 8:10-12. And he further says that the
smoke arose out of the pit, as the smoke of a great furnace;
and the sun and the air were darkened by reason of the smoke of
the pit. 9:2.</p>

<p>Hence, my very dear and in God beloved holy brethren and
sisters, let us put on the armor of light, to fight against the
works of darkness, that is, to walk in the Spirit, and we shall
not fulfill the works of the flesh. Rom. 13:12; Gal. 5:16. With
the same meaning also Peter says, "Dearly beloved, we beseech
you as strangers and pilgrims, abstain from fleshly lusts,
which war against the soul." I Pet. 2:11. Hence we must arm
ourselves in weakness with the mind of Jesus Christ, with the
Holy Ghost, with the word of truth, with the armor of light,
and with the power of God, on the right hand and on the left
(II Cor. 6:6, 7), that is, we must yield ourselves unto God,
and live in God, as those that are become alive from the dead,
and our members as instruments of righteousness unto God; then
the wicked will not have dominion over us, as Paul teaches.
Rom. 6:13, 14. And where this thus triumphs, works and prevails
in the power of the Spirit, there are not only conflicts, dying
unto the sins of the flesh, and unto the old Adam with his
lusts and desires, but there is also, through the divine
knowledge and the mind of Jesus Christ, together with an
invincible, firm faith, a sure and certain mind in the word and
truth of the Lord: a conflict against principalities, powers,
the rulers of the darkness of this world, and wicked spirits;
and we also bring all reason, and every high thing and what
exalts itself against the truth into captivity to the obedience
of Christ. Eph. 6:12; II Cor. 10: 5. And this, as has been
said, through a pure, wholesome, sure, and steadfast knowledge
of God,</p>

</div><div id="831"> 

<p>and a constant and certain mind, with the invincible shield
of faith, with which all the fiery darts of the wicked are
quenched. Eph. 6:16. And where this thus takes place and
exists, as said above, there is the armor of light, but not of
the flesh; there the power and armor of God have been put on;
there is the mind of Christ, of the Spirit, but not of the
flesh: there they war in, by and with faith, by which
everything is conquered and put down in mighty power and in the
strength of the Spirit, as has been said, etc.</p>

<p>O my dear friends, regenerated, children of the resurrection
and of life, of light and of the day (Luke 20:36; I Thess.
5:5), children of God, and brethren and sisters of Jesus
Christ, His companions and anointed members of His body, lively
stones (I Pet. 2:5), temples of the Holy Ghost (I Cor. 6:19),
kings and priests of God, I say, inhabitants of Jerusalem, and
fellow heirs of His promise, yea, my sanctified brethren and
sisters of our common, most holy Christian faith, also guests,
strangers and pilgrims with Abraham, Isaac and Jacob, in this
world (I Pet. 2:11; Heb. 11:9), Oh, what power, operation,
nature and evidence have and pertain to these and like names,
yea, what comfort, joy and gladness lie in them, belong in
them, and would follow from them, that is, an evidence of
obedience (Heb. 11:8), yea, an evidence, that one seeks the
future promised land, firmly believes God's promises, despises
the earthly, and loves the heavenly; yea, these names attest
and confirm God's promises, that is, that no one has a right
to, can have, bear, keep, and, in the power of the Spirit,
maintain and live up these names, except he have with the
patriarchs a firm assurance of faith, and judge him faithful
who has promised it, and who is also able to keep it. Heb.
11:11. And therefore they all willingly journeyed as pilgrims,
and through steadfast faith saw the future things, and held
fast to them, and thus evinced their names in power and indeed,
for our instruction, comfort, example and imitation.</p>

<p>Herein rejoice now with us, O you holy brethren and sisters
in the Holy Spirit of truth, in the invincible, strong
knowledge of God, and of the faith which leads to the hope of
everlasting life; my most beloved, in the mind of Jesus Christ
and nature of God. Yea, my immovable holy brethren and sisters,
as I hope forever, brethren according to the Spirit, and not
the flesh, according to the Gospel, and not the letter. Yea, I
repeat it, my holy brethren and sisters, regenerated from the
dead by the resurrection of Jesus Christ into heavenly places,
here in the Holy Ghost, and hereafter in perfection. Then you
shall rejoice with joy unspeakable; then you shall live
eternally and be forever happy; then the fiery lake and the
second death shall not be able to terrify you; then shall your
body, soul and spirit together be saved and forever blessed;
then you shall eternally be filled and anointed with the Holy
Ghost; then you shall be clothed in white raiment, and crowned
and rewarded with thecrown of life, of joy, and of everlasting
gladness and pleasure; then you shall enter into eternal joy
and rest, and be taken and caught up in the air, to meet the
Lord, and ever be with Him (I Thess. 4:17); then you shall be
changed in the twinkling of an eye (I Cor. 15:51, 52) and your
body and face be glorified with heavenly glory; there you shall
shine forth as the sun in the kingdom of your Father (Matt.
13:43), then you shall laugh and rejoice (Luke 6:21); then you
shall forever behold yourselves as in a mirror, in His face,
brightness and glory, and behold Him who thus loved you that he
gave His only begotten Son, who loves you even as His dear
heavenly Father loved and blessed Him in eternity. I John 3:1;
John 3:16.</p>

<p>Yes, then you shall in perfection, with soul, body, and
spirit, inwardly and outwardly; burn in the fire of His love,
and be forever inflamed in His abounding grace, sit at His
table (Luke 12:37), and eat the bread of angels, of life and
salvation and drink to the full of the waters of wisdom, life,
of eternal salvation, and of everlasting joy; then shall He
rejoice in Himself with His angels and holy hosts, and be
joyful over you with the shouting of His multitude; then shall
you receive, inherit and possess the imperishable riches that
shall endure forever; then shall you be rich in body, soul and
spirit; then shall you sing, leap, and cry, "Holy, holy, holy is
the Lord God, hallelujah" (Isa. 6:3); then shall a thousand
years be to you as one day (II Pet. 3:8); then shall eternity
be to you as the twinkling of an eye; then sha:l your years and
days not grow old or be fulfilled; then shall you be without
beginning of days and end of life: then you shall pass eternity
as a moment of time; then you shall forever be without change,
which now heart cannot comprehend, nor tongue or mouth express
and fathom. Behold, this is now to be hung as a bright mirror
before the eyes of our hearts; they are fruits of the promised
land, the sweet Word of God, and immortal fruits, the powers of
the world to come.</p>

<p>See hereby, my very dear and most beloved holy brethren and
sisters in the regeneration and resurrection of Jesus Christ
from the dead into heavenly places, that is, through the
renewing of the spirit of the mind (Eph. 4:23), through the
mind of Jesus Christ, as firm walls and pillars in the truth of
God, my dear friends, the apple of my eyes, my right hand and
foot, hold fast to, and continue to stand upon, the firm ground
of truth, upon which you are built and placed, whereunto we are
from eternity foreordained, called and created of God, that is,
according to the likeness of God, and to eternal life, through
Jesus Christ. I commend you all to the holy, invincible God,
the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost, and to His holy Word and
everlasting peace, in your holy assemblies, to the praise of
His holy name, and to our salvation. We give and commend you
and all of us again, for an eternal adieu, into the invincible
arms of His pow-</p>

</div><div id="832"> 

<p>er, and into the invincible hands of His strength; the
powers of heaven and the firmament of faithfulness be our
foundation and strength, to enter through death into life
eternal. We unworthy ones greet your love out of pure
unfeigned, heartfelt, brotherly love, yea we greet all our
brethren and sisters, the regenerated in the resurrection of
Jesus Christ into heavenly places, the mind of Christ, the new
likeness and brightness of His glory, the undefiled, pure
knowledge of God, that leads to the hope of eternal life,
through firm faith and power, and the communion of the Holy
Ghost forever. Amen.</p>

<p>This we unworthy ones have written you in haste in our
bonds, if haply it should please God, that we might be worthy
of being remembered by you in your holy prayers, harping and
hallelujahs, and that we with you, and you with us, might
forever rejoice. Greet therefore, in our name, all the saints
of God, and you among yourselves, with pure hearts, holy and
bent knees, uncovered heads, in the holy name of our God, with
the pleasant kiss of peace, embrace and bless one another
cordially in fervent love. Once more I commend you to the faith
of God's elect, the health of Jesus Christ, the knowledge of
God that leads to godliness, and to the hope of eternal life; and remain invincible forever. The
Lord be praised forever. Amen.</p><br />

<p>Written by me TIJs JEURIAENSS, your weak, poor and miserable
brother, from our bonds, A. D. 1569, the 5th day of February,
imprisoned in the Hague for the testimony of the truth.</p><br />

<h1>WILLEM JANSS FROM WATERLAND, AFTER TERRIBLE TORTURES BURNED ALIVE AT AMSTERDAM, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST ON THE 12TH OF MARCH, 1569</h1> 

<p>About two weeks after the death of the aforementioned hero
of God, Pieter Pieterss Beckjen, there was also (entirely for
his sake) put to death, in the same place at Amsterdam, another
valiant champion and soldier of Christ, who loved the truth
mare than his own life, named Willem Janss, born in Waterland,
and residing at Doornickendam, the circumstances which led to
his death being as follows</p>

<p>This Willem Janss having heard that his dear fellow brother
Pieter Pieterss Beckjen was about to offer up his sacrifice,
and to deliver his body to the fire, for the truth, at
Amsterdam, he made great haste also to appear at this time at
the place of exe-</p>

</div><div id="833"> 

<p>cution, at Amsterdam, in order that he might witness the
death of his brother, and, if possible, strengthen him in the
faith in his extremity.</p>

<p>However, when he arrived at the city, he was a little too
late, the bar having already been let down on account of the
execution. But his zeal was so great, that he had no rest till
he might see his beloved friend either alive or dead; hence he,
for a certain sum of money, had the bar unlocked and made haste
to be present at said offering.</p>

<p>When Pieter Pieterss Beckjen was brought forth to die, this
valiant hero and friend of God, standing over against the place
of execution, on the steps of the weighing office, called to
him with a loud voice, saying, "Contend valiantly, dear
brother."</p>

<p>He was immediately also seized by the persecutors, thrown
into prison, twice severely and horribly tortured, and, when he
would in no wise apostatize, he was two weeks after the death
of his dear brother, sentenced to the fire, to be burned alive,
at the same place where his brother had died; which was also
done to him after he had commended his soul into the hands of
God.</p>

<p>The foregoing was recorded long ago, from credible
witnesses, though the date, or time when it occurred was not
correctly stated,* which we have corrected according to the
import of the following sentence, which was pronounced upon him
on the day of his death, in the court at Amsterdam, in which
also all the circumstances upon which the rulers of darkness at
that time founded his death are expressed. It reads as
follows</p>

<h2>Sentence of death of Willem Janss from
Waterland</h2> 

<p>Whereas Willem Janss, from Waterland, residing at
Doornickendam, present here as a prisoner, unmindful of his
soul's salvation, and the obedience which he owed to our mother
the holy church, and to His Royal Majesty, as his natural lord
and prince despising the ordinances of the holy church, has
never been to confession; and only once in his life, about
eight years ago, to the holy, worthy sacrament; has further
undertaken several times to go to the assembly of the
reprobated and accursed sect of Mennonists or Anabaptists;
also, about six or seven years ago, rejecting and renouncing
the baptism received by him in his infancy of the holy church,
been rebaptized, and afterwards received the breaking of bread
three or four different times, after the manner of the
afore-mentioned sect, has also exhorted said sect as a teacher;
and on the 26th of February ultimo, when one Pieter Pieterss
Beckjen, bargeman, was to be executed in this city, on account
of said sect, he, the prisoner, standing among the people,
undertook yet to strengthen said Pieter Pieterss in his
obstinacy, calling with a loud voice these or similar
words, "Contend valiantly, dear brother," and though he, the
prisoner, by my lords of the court as well as by divers
clerical</p>

<p class="c8">* The time of the death of Willem Janss, as also
of Pieter Pieterss Beckjen, had from of old been fixed in the
year 1567; but this was two years too early, as appears from
the adjoined sentence.</p>
<p>persons, has been urged and repeatedly
admonished to leave the afore-mentioned reprobated sect, and to
return to our mother the holy church, he nevertheless refuses
to do the salve, continuing in his stubbornness, and obstinacy,
so that he, the prisoner, according to what has been mentioned,
has committed crime against divine and human majesty, as by
disturbing through said sect the common peace and welfare of
the land, according to the import of the decrees of his majesty
existing in regard to this, which crimes, for an example unto
others, ought not to remain unpunished; therefore, my lords of
the court, having heard the demand of the lord bailiff, and
having seen the confession of the prisoner, and having had
regard to his stubbornness and obstinacy, have condemned said
prisoner, and, by these presents do condemn him to be executed
with fire according to the decrees of his majesty; and declare
all his property confiscated for the benefit of his majesty
aforesaid. Done in court, the 12th of March, A. D. 1569, in
presence of all the judges, by advice of all the
burgomasters.</p>

<h2>Of the twofold torturings of the aforesaid
martyr according to the record of said secretary</h2> 

<p>This delinquent was tortured twice, according to the
sentence of the judges, namely, the 26th of February, and the
last of the same month, A. D. 1569, as appears from the records
of the confession.</p>

<p>Thus extracted from the book of criminal sentences of the
city of Amsterdam, preserved in the archives of said city.</p>

<p class="c5">N. N.</p>

<h2>JAN QUIRIJNSS, OF UTRECHT, A SKIPPER, AFTER<br />
BEING TWICE TORTURED, EXECUTED WITH<br />
FIRE, OR BURNT ALIVE, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, AT AMSTERDAM, ON THE 12TH OF MARCH,<br />
A. D. 1569</h2> 

<p>On the same day that the afore-mentioned friend of God,
Willem Janss, from Waterland, was put to death by fire, there
was also, in the same city of Amsterdam, by the same judges, in
the same court, and for the same reason, sentenced to death and
the fire, a certain pious brother, named Jan Quirijnss, a
native of Utrecht, and by trade a skipper; who, though he was a
citizen of the city of Amsterdam, had nevertheless his
citizenship in the new and heavenly Jerusalem, to obtain which,
he pressed through the strait gate, so that he left his flesh
on the posts, all of which appears from the following sentence,
which was pronounced about an hour before his death; and which,
though drawn up very odiously by the papistic rulers who then
reigned at Amsterdam, nevertheless, when considered
impartially, sufficiently shows the truth of what we have just
said. The contents of it, except the title, are word for word
as follows</p>

<p class="c25">Sentence of death of Jan Quirijnss, of
Utrecht, skipper</p>

<p>Whereas Jan Quirijnss, skipper, born at Utrecht, citizen of
this city, at present a prisoner, unmindful</p>

</div><div id="834"> 

<p>of his soul's salvation, and the obedience which he owed to
our mother, the holy church, and to his royal majesty, as his
natural lord and prince, undertook, contrary to the ordinances
of the holy church, and to the great contempt of the holy
baptism received by him in his infancy, to have himself
baptized by the teachers of the reprobated and accursed sect of
the Mennonists, about seven years ago; also, afterwards, at two
different times, according to the manner of said sect, to
receive the breaking of the bread; and several times attended
the assembly of said sect, and this even within a year: and,
moreover, has always so despised the ordinances of the holy
church, and does still despise them, that he has been neither
to confession nor to the holy, worthy sacrament, except once
about twelve years ago; to which reprobated and accursed sect
he, the prisoner, still persistently clings, refusing to return
to our mother, the holy <i>church,</i> notwithstanding he has
repeatedly, by divers clerical persons, and also by the court
of this city, been urged thereto and thus instructed; so that
he, the prisoner, according to what has been mentioned, has
committed crime against divine and human majesty, as disturbing
by his sect the common peace and welfare of the land, according
to the decrees of his majesty; therefore, my lords of the
court, having heard the demand of my lord the bailiff, and seen
the confession of the prisoner, and having had regard to his
great stubbornness and obstinacy, have condemned him, and by
these presents do condemn him, to be executed with fire,
according to the decrees of his majesty; and declare all his
property confiscated for the benefit of his majesty aforesaid,
without prejudice to the privileges of this city in all other
matters. Done in court, in presence, etc.</p>

<p class="c8"><i>How said martyr was twice tortured,
according</i><br />
<i>to the record of the secretary of said place</i></p>

<p>The aforesaid person was twice tortured, namely on the
fourth and fifth of March, A. D. 1569, and this according to
the sentence of the judges, as appears from the records of the
confession.</p>

<p>Thus extracted from the book of criminal sentences of the
city of Amsterdam, preserved in the archives of said city.</p>

<p class="c5">N. N.</p>

<h2>CORNELIS JANSS OF HAERLEM, A SAILOR, BURNT<br />
FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST,<br />
AT AMSTERDAM, ON THE 12TH OF<br />
MARCH, A. D. 1569</h2> 

<p>At the same time, and in the same court, there also received
his sentence of death, Cornelis Janss, a sailor, a native of
Haerlem according to the body, but born again of God from
heaven according to the soul. However, he had not yet received
baptism upon his true faith, which (though he had not been able
to find an opportunity for it) he greatly deplored even at his
very last, since the Lord has said, "Thus it becometh us to
fulfill all righteousness." Matt. 3:15.In short, sentence was
pronounced upon him, that he should like the preceding martyrs
(Willem Janss and Jan Quirijnss) be put to death with fire;
concerning which we have obtained, from the book of criminal
sentences, of the city of Amsterdam, a true copy of his
sentence of death, as also, how he was twice examined by
torture, or on the rack, and when all this took place; <i>which
copy</i> we will faithfully annex here, for the greater
confirmation of this matter; it reads as follows</p>

<p class="c8"><i>Sentence of death of Cornelis Janss of
Haerlem,</i><br />
<i>sailor</i></p>

<p>Whereas Cornelis Janss, sailor, born at Haerlem, citizen of
this city, at present a prisoner here, unmindful of his soul's
salvation,* and the obedience which he owed to our mother, the
holy church, and to his imperial majesty, as his natural lord
and prince, has apostatized from the holy church, so that he,
despising her ordinances, has never in his life been to
confession, nor to the holy worthy sacrament; and has also
several times attended the assembly of the reprobated and
accursed sect of the Mennonists, in this city, as well as
lately, before the last frost, in the town of Middleburgh, in
Zealand, being then so hardened in said sect, that he still, as
prisoner, declares that he regrets that he is not rebaptized,
and has not received the breaking of bread, adding that he
would have done this if he had had a convenient time for it; to
which reprobated and accursed sect, he, the prisoner, still
persistently clings, refusing to return to our mother, the holy
church, notwithstanding he has repeatedly, by divers clerical
persons, and also by the court of this city, been urged
thereto, and instructed; so that he, the prisoner, according to
what has been mentioned, has committed crime against divine and
human majesty, as disturbing the common peace and welfare;
therefore, my lords of the court, having heard the demand of my
lord the bailiff, and seen the confession of the prisoner, and
having had regard to his great stubbornness and obstinacy, have
condemned said prisoner, and by these presents do condemn him
to be executed with fire, according to the decree of his
majesty; and declare his property confiscated without prejudice
to the privileges of this city in all other matters. Done in
court, in presence, etc.</p>

<p class="c8"><i>Touching the two torturings of the aforesaid
mar</i><br />
<i>tyr, according to the record in the book of</i><br />
<i>criminal sentences of the city of Amsterdam</i></p>

<p>The aforesaid person was twice tortured, according to the
sentence of the judges, namely, on the fourth and the sixth of
March, A. D. 1569, as appears from the records of the
confession.</p>

<p>Thus extracted from the book of criminal sentences of the
city of Amsterdam, preserved in the archives of said place.</p>

<p class="c8">* A great calumny which the writer of this
sentence cast upon this good man, as though he had been
forgetful of his soul's salvation.</p>

</div><div id="835"> 

<h2>CLEMENT HENDRICKSS, A SAIL MAKER, BURNT FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, AT AMSTERDAM, ON THE TWELFTH OF MARCH, IN THE YEAR 1569</h2>

<p>The awful fury and bloodthirstiness of the papistic rulers
in the city of Amsterdam continued, and on the same day
pronounced sentence of death upon a fourth person of said
Anabaptistic religion, named Clement Hendrickss, a sail maker
by trade.</p>

<p>He, though possessing a living, effectual and holy faith,
yet through want of opportunity or some other reason had also,
like the preceding martyr, Cornelis Janss, not yet received
baptism upon his faith, which grieved him not a little when he
was in bonds; but he did not on this account cast away his hope
in the grace of God, since this had not been omitted through
contempt of this holy ordinance of Christ, but from want of
opportunity, on account of the pressure of persecution.</p>

<p>The authorities of the above-mentioned city also viewed it
in this light, and sentenced him to the fire, according to the
imperial decree, as though he had already been baptized upon
faith, because he confessed being desirous of it. This severe
punishment of death he valiantly and steadfastly endured, and
was thus numbered by the pious, with the number of the faithful
martyrs of Jesus Christ, though according to, the judgment of
the papists he died as a heretic, as appears from the following
sentence which was publicly read to him in court, just before
his death, by the rulers of darkness, in these words:</p>

<p class="c8"><i>Sentence of death of Clement Hendrickss,
sail</i><br />
<i>maker</i></p>

<p>Whereas Clement Hendrickss, sail maker, citizen of this
city, at present a prisoner here, unmindful of his soul's
salvation,* and the obedience which he owed to our mother, the
holy church, and to his imperial majesty, as his natural lord
and prince, has so apostatized from the holy church, that he,
despising her ordinances, has for five years and longer been
neither to confession nor to the holy sacrament, and has at
three different times attended the assembly of the reprobated
and accursed sect of the Mennonists, the last time about a year
ago; and is so hardened in said sect, that even while a
prisoner he has declared that he is sorry that he is not
rebaptized, and has not received the breaking of bread; and has
also repeatedly attended the meetings; to which above-mentioned
reprobated sect of Mennonists, he, the prisoner, still
persistently clings, refusing to return to our mother, the holy
church, notwithstanding he has repeatedly, by divers clerical
persons as well as by the court of this city, been urged
thereto and instructed; so that the prisoner, according to what
has been mentioned, has committed crime against divine and
human majesty, as disturbing by his sect the common peace</p>

<p class="c8">* How often shall it be said in these Amsterdam
sentences. of the true believers, that they were unmindful of
their soul's salvation, whereas this was their sole object?</p>
<p>and welfare; therefore, my lords of the court, having heard the
demand of my lord the bailiff, and seen the confession of the
prisoner, and having had regard to his great stubbornness and
obstinacy, and duly considered everything, have condemned said
prisoner, and by these presents do condemn him to be executed
with fire, according to the decrees of his majesty; and declare
all his property confiscated for the benefit of his majesty
aforesaid, without prejudice to the privilege of this city in
all other matters. Done in court, in presence, etc.</p>

<h2>Of the torturing of the above-mentioned
Clement Hendrickss, and when this took place</h2>

<p>The aforesaid person was tortured, according to the previous
sentence of the judges, on the fourth of March, A. D. 1569, as
appears from the records of the confession.</p>

<p>Thus extracted from the book of criminal sentences,
preserved in the archives of the city of Amsterdam.</p>

<p class="c5">N. N.</p>

<p>Here follow several letters from the aforementioned martyrs,
the first from Jan Quirijnss, and the other from Clement
Hendrickss.</p>

<h2>A LETTER OF JAN QUIRIJNSS, IMPRISONED WITH<br />
CORNELIS JANSS AND CLEMENT HENDRICKSS,<br />
AT AMSTERDAM, WHERE ALL THREE WERE<br />
BURNED FOR THE TESTIMONY OF<br />
JESUS CHRIST</h2> 

<p>The eternal, almighty and merciful Father, who by His mighty
arm led His chosen out of the house of the bondage of Pharaoh,
keep and confirm you, my beloved sister in the Lord, with the
power of His Holy Spirit, to so do His will that you may be
found spotless and blameless in all peace, and in all
righteousness, truth, zeal, and love, unto the end; this grant
you the almighty and strong Lord, who is alone wise and just;
to Him be praise, honor, glory, and gratitude, now and forever.
Amen.</p>

<p>Very dear and much beloved sister in the Lord, whom I
greatly love according to the spirit, I have undertaken, by the
saving grace of God, to write you a little, as you requested of
me poor servant; for I deem myself unworthy of writing to
another -it were more necessary that some ogle should write to
me. For, dear sister, I find so much lacking in me, that, when
I call upon the Father, I fear that I am not His child, for I
do not half His will. But, dear sister, though we are compassed
by vile flesh, we will not give up courage, but firmly keep on,
and always pray without ceasing, and give Him the praise, and
constantly thank Him for His unspeakable kindness which He has
shown us simple.children. Eph. 2:7. Oh, what great grace has
appeared to us! Oh, what love has been shown us .1 Oh, what
light has arisen to us! Oh, what excellent, precious, hidden
treasure has been given into our earthen vessels! That which is
hid from the wise and prudent, He has now revealed unto us
poor, simple children. Matt. 11:25. The clear</p>

</div><div id="836"> 

<p>truth is now made known to us; the beautiful, shining light
has shined into a dark place; the clear radiance has been given
into our hearts, whereby we are illumined with the uncovered,
clear light, through Christ Jesus, this gracious Lord of lords.
II Pet. 1:19; II Cor. 4:6.</p>

<p>He took away the great darkness out of our dark hearts and
yielded Himself, this merciful Jesus Christ, to be a shining
light unto us, as John says, "This then is the message which we
have heard of him, and declare unto you, that God is light, and
in him is no darkness at all. If we say that we have fellowship
with him, and walk in darkness, we lie, and do not the truth."
1 John 1:5, 6. Therefore, dear sister, take heed to the light,
and let it be a lamp unto your feet, and a light unto your
path, as David says (Ps. 119:105), that you may not stumble by
clay, but may always see before you wherever you go; for the
darkness is passed, and the true light now shines. I John 2:8.
He has delivered us from the power of darkness [and called us]
into His marvelous light, who, as Peter says, in time past were
not a people, but are now the people of God. Col. 1:13; I Pet.
2:9, 10. For this reason we may well be glad in our hearts, and
rejoice, and say with David (Ps. 124:7), "The snare is broken,
and we are escaped; we are delivered out of the jaws of the
lion, in which we were imprisoned," that is, in this dismal,
abominable, subtle, wicked world, which lieth in wickedness. I
Pet. 5:19.</p>

<p>The God of this world, that rules in the children of
unbelief, has so blinded the minds of them that they believe
not, and so stopped their hearts, that they cannot see or
perceive in the least, nor taste that the Lord is gracious. II
Cor. 4:4. With them we all had our fellowship, and had our
conversation in the lusts of our flesh, fulfilling the desires
of the flesh and of the mind; and were by nature the children
of wrath, even as others. Eph. 2:3. But the rich, merciful and
kind God looked with His gracious eyes upon us poor sinners,
and stretched forth His blessed hand, and has now extended it
to us, and has delivered and brought us out of the pit of death
and tied up and healed our wounds; our hungering and thirsting
souls He has satisfied with the bread of life, and refreshed
with the water of the Holy Ghost; He did not let us lie in our
blood, He did not desire to pass by us, He did not let us
perish with hunger; when we asked for bread He did not give us
a stone; neither did He let us go thirsty, but refreshed our
famishing souls from the clear fountain of living water. Oh,
that we had never spent money for that which is not food I but
we have largely spent our money for bitter gall and vinegar,
and for false, corrupt leaven. Oh, that we had thought of this
gracious host, who gives it for nought to all that ask Him
(Rev. 21:6); and none that come to Him will be cast out. Hence,
my dear sister, let us desire the rational, unadulterated milk,
as new born babes, that are born again from above of God,
through JesusChrist. 1 Peter 2:3; John 3:3. Let us take good
heed to and firmly keep our new birth; for John says, "Whosoever
is born of God, doth not commit sin; for his seed remaineth in
him: and he cannot sin, because he is born of God." John
3:9.</p>

<p>Oh, that we might take an example from Esau, who sold his
birthright for a mess of pottage. Oh, how little (lid he esteem
his salvation; but afterwards, when he sought it with tears, he
was rejected; for he found no place of repentance. Gen. 25:33;
27:38; Heb. 12:17. But, dear sister, let us diligently take
heed, that we hold fast that which we have, which has been
given us from above of Him who is the giver of all good. Rev.
2:25; James 1:5; 17. And if we ask anything according to His
will, He heareth us: and if we know that He hears us, in
whatsoever we ask, we know that we have the petition that we
desire of Him. I John 5:14, 15. Is this, not a gracious Lord?
Yes, assuredly, and He is a Lord rich over all them that call
upon Him; only place your trust firmly upon Him, and put your
will into God's will, and all will be well.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear sister in the Lord, be steadfast,
immoveable, always abounding in the work of the Lord, forasmuch
as you know that your labor is not in vain in the Lord. I Cor.
15:58. For you shall receive reward by it. Matt. 20:9. I f you
sow to the Spirit, you shall of the Spirit reap life
everlasting. Gal. 6:8. If we sow in tears, we shall reap with
joy; for our shame we shall receive honor, and for confusion we
shall rejoice, says the prophet. Isa. .61:7. Oh, let us be
content then -we shall be such a glorious people; and with
patience wait for it, and think of the glorious promise that He
has promised us. I John 2:25. He also will do it, He will not
delay His promise (1I Peter 3:9); only let us continue
valiantly, rejoicing in hope, patient in tribulation,
continuing instant in prayer, not slothful in our business, but
fervent in spirit, a burning love in our hearts (Romans 12:10,
etc.), and the Lord through love grounded and rooted in us
(Eph. 3:17), so that no one may be able to separate us from the
love of God, nothing of all that may come upon us for the name
of Jesus Christ, and for His testimony. Romans 8:35. Let
therefore no one beguile us of our reward, but let us evince
from our faith virtue, and let our moderation be known unto all
men. Colossians 2:18; II Peter 1:5; Phil. 4:5. The Lord is at
hand, be careful for nothing; for it is soon over; our time,
dear sister, is so short, if we well consider it. I Cor. 7:29.
Hence let us pass our short time in the fear of God, and be
sober and vigilant; for our adversary the devil, as a roaring
lion, walketh about, seeking whom he may devour</p>

<p>whom resist steadfast in the faith. I Peter 5:8, 9. As James
says, "Resist the devil, and he will flee from you." James 4:7.
Yes, dear sister, he walks about us very craftily; now with
this, now with that, whether outwardly or inwardly with our
evil flesh, which is our greatest enemy, with whom we</p>

</div><div id="837"> 

<p>have most to contend; the Spirit against the flesh, the
flesh against the Spirit: these are contrary the one to the
other, so that we do. not the things that we would. Gal. 5:17.
But Paul gives us comfort, when he says, "Walk in the Spirit,
and ye shall not fulfill the lust of the flesh." v. 16. Oh,
that we were as fervent in spirit, as diligent in good works,
in seeking eternal life, as we are in seeking earthly
treasures, worldly things, which must nevertheless perish and
remain here; and that we might love God's commandments above
gold or precious stones; we should be such blessed children, we
should continually have less and less conflict. But alas I it
is sometimes the case, that greater endeavors are made for
these temporal things, than for the abiding riches that are in
heaven, which shall nevertheless endure forever. In writing
this I do not mean that this is the case with you; for I well
perceive that you seek the Lord with all your heart. Hence, my
dear sister, let us lay to heart the words of the apostle, who
warns us against the tempter; lest we also be deceived by
Satan, for we are not ignorant of his devices (II Cor. 2:11),
that is, that he aims to capture God's children in his net by
lies and envy, since he has been the father of lies from the
beginning (John 8:44), as he has shown in the case of the first
man, as is written in Wisdom, "God created man for eternal life;
but through the envy of the devil death came into the world;
and they that are of his part do follow him." 2:23, 24. Thus he
also comes to us with his emissaries, with whom we have a hard
conflict, yea, those who went out from us being the most
troublesome to us, so that we find that the Scripture is
fulfilled, namely, that in the latter days it should be as John
says, "Little children it is the last time: and as ye have heard
that antichrist shall come, even now are there many
antichrists; whereby we know that it is the last time. They
went out from us, but they were not of us; for if they had been
of us, they would no doubt have continued with us: but they
went out that they might be made manifest that they were not
all of us." I John 2:18, 19. See, dear sister, thus the apostle
warns us; for they are not all Abraham's children that are of
Abraham's seed. Rom. 9:7.</p>

<p>Therefore, dear sister, look to the pious, and not to the
weak; look unto Jesus Christ the Author and finisher of the
faith, as Paul says, and suffer not yourself to be led astray
by certain vain talkers who undertake to turn you aside. Heb.
12:2; Tit. 1:10. Christ says that in the latter days many false
prophets shall arise in His name (Oh, mark, in His name);
insomuch that, if it were possible, even the very elect should
be deceived. Matt. 24: 24. But he that endureth to the end
shall be saved; the elect shall not be deceived. Be valiant in
your mind, and always pray without ceasing, with prayer and
supplication in the Spirit. Meditate day and night in the law
of the Lord, that you may be a tree planted by the rivers of
water, that bringeth forth his rich good fruit in his season;
whose leaf shall not wither (Ps. 1:2, 3); and that you may be a
fruitful branch in the vine Christ Jesus. For David says, "The
righteous shall never fall, but shall stand forever like mount
Zion; yea, the righteous shall never be removed," says Solomon.
Psalin 125:1; Prov. 10:30.</p>

<p>Let us therefore finish our course with joy, and strive
lawfully (II Tim. 2:5); for no one is crowned, except he strive
lawfully, as did the pious forefathers, who placed their hope
in God, whom they faithfully served. He did not forsake them,
nor did they forsake Him; they bowed their necks under the
scepter of Christ Jesus, as the pious Esther also bowed her
neck. II Esther 14:2. Oh, take heed to this; though the
righteous must suffer much here, and be deprived of all human
help and comfort, let us turn our eyes to the succorer Jesus
Christ, who will not forsake us. Can ~" mother forsake her
child? Yea, though she forsake it, yet will I not forsake thee,
says the Lord. Isa. 49:16. He that touches us, touches the
apple of His eye. Zech. 2:8. Who should not fear such a God,
who always preserves and protects His poor people? For the joy
which He has promised us, sweetens everything. He that
overcometh shall inherit all things. Rev. 21:7. They shall sit
with Christ Jesus in His throne, even as He sat down with His
Father in His throne. Revelation 3:21. Yea, He shall gird
Himself, and go before us, and serve us at table. Luke 12:37.
How the righteous shall shine forth then in the kingdom of his
Father I How they shall leap up then as calves of the stall I
How the righteous shall then shine, as sparks that run among
the stubble 1 how they that did not love their lives unto death
shall then triumph and sing the song, and, with palms in their
hands and crowns upon their heads, thank, praise, and magnify
the name of the Lord I In short, eye hath not seen, nor ear
heard, neither have entered into the heart of man, the things
which God hath prepared for them that love Him. Matt. 13:43;
Malachi 4:2; Wisd. 3:7; John 12:25; Rev. 14:3; II Esd. 2:46; I
Cor. 2:9.</p>

<p>Hence, let everyone that has this hope in him purify
himself, even as He is pure. I John 3:3. But the God of all
grace, who has called us by His glory and power, strengthen and
confirm you, my beloved, dear sister in the Lord, with the
power of the Holy Ghost, unto the end. Amen. I Peter 5:10.</p>

<p>Herewith I will commend you, my beloved sister in Christ, to
the Lord, and to the Word of His great grace. Receive this my
short, simple letter in good part, for I have written it out of
true, unfeigned brotherly love, this the Almighty Lord knows.
Hence I pray you, receive this from me in good part; for he
that fears God receives everything for the best. Always hold
fast your first love unto the end, and the fervent love to God
and the brethren (Rev. 2:4; I Peter 4:8); may the Almighty,
eternal and strong God grant you this. Amen.</p>

   </div><div id="838"> 

<p>Greet all my friends in my name, especially M.S's daughter, G. R. W., and further all that know me.
Several that were with me when I wrote this greet you; also
Cornelis Janss greet you. The grace of the Lord Jesus Christ be
with you. Amen.</p>

<p>Blessed are they which are persecuted for righteousness'
sake: for theirs is the kingdom of heaven.</p>

<br />

<h1>FIVE LETTERS OF CLEMENT HENDRICKSS, SENT FROM HIS PRISON IN AMSTERDAM, WHERE HE LAID DOWN HIS LIFE FOR THE KNOWLEDGE OF THE TRUTH; TOGETHER WITH JAN KRIJNSS AND CORNELIS JANSS MENTIONED ABOVE</h1> 

<h2>First letter, sent to one of his
acquaintances, named Grietgen Dircks</h2>

<p>Know, dear Grietgen Dircks, that I am still of good courage
in the flesh, and that my mind is still unchanged and fixed to
fear the Lord, the Lord be thanked; I can never thank the Lord
enough for it.</p>

<p>I sometimes am much grieved that I unworthy one have at
times grieved you so much. I can easily imagine that many are
grieved on my account, as I have heard, that it is said that I
have apostatized from my faith, which is not true, the Lord be
praised. So far they have asked me only simple questions; if
they would only not ask more closely, this I sincerely desire;
but I fear that I already am where I must stay. The Lord grant
unto me what is for my salvation. I trust in Him, that He will
give me strength, that I may continue to His praise, and to the
salvation of my soul. Our other three brethren have already
fought the fight; if it is the Lord's will, He may also take me
home. On Friday I yet knew nothing to the contrary, but that I
should also offer up my sacrifice; and my mind was quite ready
for it, the Lord be thanked; I can never thank Him enough, that
He so faithfully succors me. I trust only in Him, and he that
trusts in Him shall not be ashamed; for He does not forsake His
own who trust in Him alone. Be so kind and greet all the
brethren very much in my name, and tell them to pray for me,
that the Lord would strengthen me unto my last extremity; for
the prayer of the faithful and righteous avails much; this is
my sincere request. Acts 12:5, 12; James 5:16. Herewith I will
commend you to the Lord, if we should see each other no more
with the eyes of the flesh; take this in good part, and tell my
sister what I have written you; for she is as yet under the
impression that I have apostatized from my faith-the Lord is
the discerner of all hearts. Acts 1:24.</p>

<p>By me Clement Hendrickss, unworthy prisoner in the Lord.</p>

<h2><i>The second letter of Clement
Hendrickss</i></h2>

<p>Grace, peace and mercy from God our heavenly Father, through
Jesus Christ His only beloved Son, who gave Himself for us, out
of great love, to deliver us from the bond of death; this
fervent love,with the power and strength of the Holy Ghost, I
wish you my very dear and beloved N., as a token of gratitude,
and for consolation and strength, now and forever. Amen.</p>

<p>Further, my very dear and beloved, beloved by God, the
heavenly Father and the Lord Jesus Christ, out of true
Christian, brotherly love I cannot well forbear to write your
love briefly as to how it still is with me in my bonds. I
cannot thank and praise the Lord sufficiently, that He so
comforts me in my tribulation, and that my mind is still fixed
to fear the Lord with all my heart all the days of my life,
according to my weak ability. Furthermore, very dear and
beloved, I poor and unworthy one have undertaken to write you a
little, though I am unfit to do so; but it is done out of true
Christian, brotherly love; hence accept it from me in good
part.</p>

<p>O my very dear and beloved, what a beautiful consolation it
is to us, that Christ says, "Blessed are they which are
persecuted for righteousness' sake, for theirs is the kingdom
of heaven." Matt. 5:10. Christ also says, "Whosoever doth not
take up his cross, and follow me, is not worthy of me; and he
that loseth his life for my sake shall find it." Luke 9:23, 24.
Paul, further, says all that will live godly in Christ Jesus
shall suffer persecution. II Tim. 3:12. Many are the afictions
of the righteous; but the Lord delivereth him out of them all.
Ps. 34:19. Therefore, my very dear and beloved, the prophets
suffered, yea, Christ Himself, and also all the pious witnesses
of Jesus Christ even unto the present day. Hence, let your
loins be girded about, and your lights burning; and ye
yourselves like unto men that wait for their lord, when he will
return from the wedding, that, when he cometh and knocketh they
may open unto him immediately. Blessed are those servants, whom
the lord when he cometh shall find watching: verily I say unto
you, that he shall gird himself, and make them to sit down to
meat, and will come forth and serve them. Luke 12:35-37. Hence,
my dear and much beloved,~what a beautiful comfort this is to
us I For it is written, "Eye hath not seen, nor ear heard,
neither have entered into the heart of man, the things which
God hath prepared for them that love him." I Cor. 2:9. He that
shall endure unto the end. the same shall be saved. Matt.
24:13. And Esdras saw upon the Mount Sion a great people, whom
he could not number, and they all praised the Lord with songs.
And in the midst of them there was a young man of a high
stature, taller than all the rest, and upon every one of their
heads he set crowns, and was more exalted; at which he [Esdrasl
marveled greatly. So he asked the angel, and said, "Sir, what
are these?" He answered and said, "These be they that have put
off the mortal clothing, and put on the immortal, and have
confessed the name of God: now are they crowned, and receive
palms." Then he asked the angel, "What young person is it that
crowneth them, and giveth them palms in their hands?" And he
an-</p>

</div><div id="839"> 

<p>swered and said, "It is the Son of God, whom they have
confessed in the world." II Esd. 2: 42-47.</p>

<p>Behold, my dear and much beloved in the Lord, what is our
life? It is even a vapor, or as a smoke that is driven by the
wind, not knowing whence it cometh, that appeareth for a little
time, and then vanisheth away. Jas. 4:14. But our dying is
nothing less than an introduction into eternal life, to reign
with God and Christ. Christ says, "He that believeth in me is
passed from death unto life." John 5:24. If we die through Him,
we live in Him, for God is not the God of the dead, but of the
living; and Abraham believed in Him, and all believers live in
God. Matt. 22:33; Jas. 2:23. Though they suffered death, they
were the friends of God, so that He says, "He that toucheth you,
toucheth the apple of my eye." Zech. 2:8. Behold, what manner
of love the Father~hath bestowed upon us, that we should be
called the sons of God: therefore the world knoweth you not,
because it knew Him not. Therefore, my dear and much beloved,
now are we the sons of God, and it doth not yet appear what we
shall be; but we know that, when He shall appear we shall be
like Him;for we shall see Him as He is. And every man that bath
this hope in him purifieth himself, even as He is pure. I John
3:1-3. We know that, if our earthly house of this tabernacle
were dissolved, we have a building of God, a house not made
with hands, eternal in the heavens, that we may be clothed upon
with it. II Cor. 5:1, 2. Yea, saith Paul, as the sufferings of
Christ abound in us, so our consolation also aboundeth by
Christ; whether it be comfort or tribulation, it is all for our
salvation, if we suffer as the saints suffered, that is, for
the testimony of the Word of God. 1:5. 6; Rev. 6:9. Paul
further says, "If we suffer with him, if we die with Christ, we
shall live with him." I7 Tim. 2:11, 12. He further says; that
our earnest expectation is nothing less than the manifestation
of the sons of God, that is, we desire aid long so greatly for
the appearing of our Lord in the clouds, that we may be caught
up to Him in the clouds, and become like Him. Rom. 8:19; Matt.
24:30; I Thess. 4:17. While we are in these tabernacles, we are
burdened; for we would rather be clothed upon with the immortal
and heavenly glory with which Christ shall glorify us.. He that
bath wrought us for this selfsame thing is God, who bath given
unto us the earnest of the faith, through faith and trust in
His Son. II Con 5:4, 5.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear and much beloved, even as it is also written;
Though our outward man perish, yet the inward man is renewed
day by day. For our light affliction, which is but for a
moment, worketh for us a far more exceeding and eternal weight
of glory; while we look not at the things which are temporal,
but at the things which are eternal. II Cor. 4:16-18. Herewith
I commend you to the Lord; may He bless and keep you, the Lord
make His face to shine upon you and upon us all, and begracious
unto us. Num. 6:24, 25. Greet the brethren much in my name,
where it is convenient. I will commend you all to the Lord
until,the appearing of our Lord. The peace of the Lord be with
you now and forever. Amen.</p>

<p>Written in bonds, on Christmas Monday, by me,</p>

<p class="c5">CLEMENT HENDRICKSS,</p>

<p class="c5">Unworthy prisoner in the Lord.</p>

<h2>Third Letter of Clement Hendrickss, to his
father and mother</h2>

<p>I wish you, my dear and beloved father, and my dear and much
beloved mother, the Spirit of truth, and the knowledge of the
faith, according to the mind of Christ Jesus, a clear vision
and an open heart in all divine matters and in: the Word of
God, thereby rightly to discriminate which is. light or
darkness, lies or truth, yea, flesh or spirit; in order that
you may not be deceived, but firmly adhere to the word of God,
so that you may receive a full reward, and lose none of those
things which you have hitherto wrought through your faith. II
John 8.</p>

<p>Further, my dear and much beloved father and mother, whom. I
well remember in my bonds, and still pray for you every morning
and evening, that the Lord would comfort you in your sorrow,
which you have for me, poor, unworthy man, who am not worthy
that you should sorrow for me. Furthermore, my dear and.much
beloved father and mother I inform your love, that I have
undertaken to write your love a little, as to how it still is
with me, and that it is still my purpose to fear the Lord with
all my heart, with all my strength, and with all my soul,.as
long as I remain in the flesh, for which I can never
sufficiently thank and praise the almighty, great and only wise
God for His unspeakable, yea, incomprehensible grace, which He
has hitherto shown me and still daily shows me thiough Jesus
Christ and the supply of His Spirit, Phil. 1:19. For this I
thank the almighty God, and bow the knee of my heart (Prayer of
Manasses) before the Father full of grace, who is a true and
righteous God of mercy, and a God that comforts us all with His
holy Word. Therefore, my dear and much beloved father and
mother, sorrow not for me poor, unworthy man, but much rather
rejoice herein, and praise the Lord for it, that He has called
and made worthy your son, to suffer for His holy Word and His
Gospel. And we find; that the apostles and the prophets, yea,
Christ Himself, had to suffer according to the flesh, from evil
and perverse men. Hence my dear father and much beloved mother,
do not grieve too much, and be content herein, as much as is
possible for you, this I most kindly ask you for the name of
the Lord. And always comfort yourselves with the words of
Christ where He says, "He that loveth aught more than me is not
worthy of me; and everyone that forsaketh house, home, lands,
and father and mother, shall receive a hundred fold." Matt. 10:
37; Luke 14:26; Matt. 19:29. Therefore, my dear</p>

</div><div id="840"> 

<p>and much beloved father and mother what else can we meet
with in this life, than with great poverty? And what is man's
life? nothing but as 'the flower of the field: the grass
withereth and the flower fadeth; and as a vapor, that appeareth
for a little time and then vanisheth away. Isaiah 40:6, 7; Jas.
4:14. Further, my dear and much beloved father, I am of good
courage to offer up my sacrifice, and to suffer for the name of
the Lord; for Christ says, "Whosoever therefore shall confess me
before men, him will I confess also before my Father which is
in heaven." Matt. 10:32. Christ also says, "Let your light shine
before men." 5</p>

<p>16. And I fain would, when I am to offer up my sacrifice,
that they would place me on a wagon and carry me around town,
and scourge me four times, that I might let the light shine
before this evil, blind and perverse generation; for I am not
ashamed to suffer for the Gospel. Rom. 1:16. For I shall not
suffer as a thief, or a rogue, or robber, or evildoer, but I
shall suffer as a Christian. I Peter 4:15, 16. For if we suffer
for evil doing, what profit is it to us? but if we suffer for
well doing, this is acceptable with the heavenly Father. 2:20.
Furthermore my dear and much beloved father and mother, I
inform your love that they have let me know that I should
commit myself into the hands of the clergy; then they thought I
should get out of here. Thereupon I sent back word to them,
that I had no intention of doing this, and that they should go
to no trouble about it.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear and much beloved father and mother, be not
dismayed on account of this, I humbly pray you for the name of
the Lord, for of such things a Christian ought not to be
ashamed. For there was Joseph, who was tempted by the Egyptian
woman; and she had caught him by his coat or mantle, and wished
to commit whoredom with him; and she would not let him go; but
he fled from her, and left the mantle or coat in her hand,
rather than commit this great sin with her. Therefore, my dear
and much beloved father and mother, if the whore of Babylon
takes hold of our coat or mantle, that we should commit
whoredom with her, rather let go, through the grace of the
Lord, your coat or mantle, namely, your temporal life, than
that you should commit whoredom with her. Rev. 17:1 , 2.</p>

<p>Furthermore, my dear and much beloved father and mother, I
ask you very humbly, with weeping eyes, for forgiveness for all
that I have done amiss against you by word or deed, or by any
thoughts, that you will forgive me. It seems that my time will
soon be here now, when I shall offer up my sacrifice. Hence my
dear and much beloved father and mother, I will commend you to
the Lord, and bid you adieu till the appearing of our Lord
Jesus Christ. Tlie peace of the Lord be with you forever and
ever. Amen.</p>

<p>Written by me, your beloved son, in my bonds.</p>

<p class="c5">CLEMENT HENDRICKSS,</p>

<p class="c5">Unworthy prisoner in the Lord.</p>

<h2><i>Fourth letter of Clement Hendrdckss, to his
father</i><br />
<i>and mother</i></h2>

<p>A most friendly greeting to you my beloved father and
mother. I inform you, that I am still of good courage and well,
as I hope that also you are.</p>

<p>Further, my dear and much beloved father and mother, J
inform your love how it is with me, according to the body, in
my bonds. I cannot thank and praise the Lord enough for it,
that He so comforts me in my tribulation, and that it is still
my fixed purpose to fear the Lord as long as I am here, though
flesh and blood should suffer on this account.</p>

<p>Furthermore, my dear and much beloved father and mother, I
inform your love, how they dealt with me when I was first
apprehended. I had been invited out in the evening, which was
on a Wednesday, and we were speaking of going home. Then the
Watch met ' us, and we had no light with us, whereupon we were
taken up above by the watch, where sat Floris den Bral, who
asked us, whence we came, whether we had not been at a meeting
of the new religion. We said, "No." He asked whether we would
substantiate this with our oath. I said to him, "Will you not
believe my word; I mean to tell you the truth." But he insisted
on the oath, and we would not swear, then he said, "Take them
back below." And we were forthwith taken in the rear, into the
dungeon, as though we had been thieves or rogues. The next
morning we were taken above, and they brought me first before
the lords, having bound my hands behind my back, as though I
had been a thief. Then the bailiff asked me and said, "Clement."
And I said, "Sir bailiff." He asked, "How many times have you
attended the meetings of the Mennists?" I kept silence and gave
him no answer. And he insisted hard upon knowing it, whereupon
I was led away into a room by myself. Then the others were
brought before the lords, and asked concerning their faith.
They confessed their faith,.and then I was again brought before
the lords, and he again asked me, how often r had attended the
meetings. He wanted to know whether I had been there ten times.
I said, "No." Eight times?"No." Seven times?"No." Three
times?"Yes." Then he asked me, who had been the preacher. I
said, "I am not minded to tell it." He also wanted me to tell in
what house I had been, and what people had been there. I told
him that I was not minded to tell him. He said that he should
make me tell it. I was then taken back into the dungeon. The
day following I was again taken up before the lords, and the
bailiff asked me, whether I would not yet tell him, who had
been the preacher, where it had been, and what people had been
present. I told him that I was not yet minded to tell it, and
said, "I am in trouble, and I do not wish to bring any one else
into trouble; you have me here, deal with me accordine to your
pleasure." Jeremiah 26:14. Then the bailiff said to the
judges, "I demand him to be Dut on the rack. in order to
tear"</p>

</div><div id="841"> 

<p>all the particulars." And he said, "Take him to the rear;"
and I was taken to the rack; where I was stripped, and my shirt
tied before my body. Thus I was placed in a sitting posture on
the rack, and my eyes blindfolded. Then the bailiff came to me,
and asked me whether I would not yet tell it. I told him that I
was not yet minded to tell it. Thereupon I was laid upon the
rack, and tied to it with seven ropes. On my head there were
two knots, which lay on my forehead; and a cord on each of my
great toes, and the others around my body. The ropes were
twisted together with billets of wood, and I expected nothing
else but that he would twist in pieces the ribs in my body.
Urine was also poured into my mouth, and as I lay there in
pain, I was also scourged on my breast. The Lord knows how they
dealt with me. Through the severe pain I named four persons;
but I hoped that they were not in town. This lasted about half
an hour. I said to them, that they should put a rope around my
throat, and dispatch me at once. When they loosed the ropes, I
was not able to get up by my own efforts; the servants had to
help me up. I was then taken back into a dungeon. The next day
I was again brought above before the lords, and if it had not
been for Joost Buyck, I would have been tortured again, though
I was scarcely able to walk. Then the bailiff asked me, whether
I would not have a monk to come and see me. I said, that he
might stay away. He said, "You have to hear a dog bark; can you
not hear a man talk?" I was then taken back into the dungeon,
and a priest and a monk came to dispute with me. They began to
prate much of this and that, and to tell many fables; but I
kept silence, and let them prate on; and they got angry because
I did not reply to them more, and one of them said that I had
the devil in me. Four days after I was taken above again, when
they told me that I should prepare myself against Saturday. I
said, "Whenever it pleases the Lord I am ready." I was then
taken back into the dungeon, and expected nothing else than
that. I should offer up my sacrifice on Saturday, and even on
Saturday I had no other expectation but of offering up my
sacrifice. There came a priest to me, and would have me confess
to him. I said that I did not want to confess to him, since he
could not forgive my sins; I said, "The best confession is to
confess to the Lord my God." Then the bailiff with two judges
came to me, and said, that they would wait with me two weeks
yet; but I was of such good courage to offer up my sacrifice,
as though I had known nothing of death. Phil. 2:17. And so I am
still of such good courage, as though I knew nothing of
imprisonment. It began to vex me that it is deferred so long. I
long to be out of the flesh, and am quite cheerfully resigned
to offer up my sacrifice; the Lord does not forsake His own who
trust in Him. Furthermore, my dear and much beloved father, I
inform you, that I received your letter, and I was rejoiced to
learn that you are so well content herein.Further, my dear
father and mother, I will bid you adieu, if it be the Lord's
pleasure, till the appearing of our Lord. The peace of the Lord
be with you forever. Amen. By me,</p>

<p class="c5">CLEMENT HENDRICKSS,</p>

<p class="c5">Unworthy prisoner in the Lord.</p>

<h2><i>Fifth letter of Clement Hendrickss</i></h2>

<p>I wish you, my dear and beloved in the Spirit and according
to the truth, as I trust, in the knowledge of the faith, and in
the mind of Christ Jesus, a clear vision, and an open heart, in
all divine matters, and in the Word of God, thereby rightly to
discriminate which is light or darkness, lies or truth, yea,
flesh or spirit; in order that you may not be deceived, but
adhere firmly to the Word of God, so that you may receive a
full reward.</p>

<p>Further, my dear and much beloved, I cannot well forbear to
write you a little, how it still is with me in my bonds, and
that my mind is still fixed to fear the Lord with all my heart,
with all my strength, and with all my soul, for which I can
never fully thank and praise the almighty, great and all-wise
God, for His unspeakable, yea, incomprehensible grace which He
has hitherto shown me and still daily shows me, through Jesus
Christ, and the supply of the Spirit. For this I thank the
almighty God, and bow the knee of my heart before the Father
full of grace and truth, who is the true Father full of grace,
and the God of all comfort, who can comfort us when we are in
tribulation and distress. II Cor. 1:3, 4. Hence, my dear and
faithful, keep well this good treasure, which is committed to
you, given you of God through grace; for faith is the gift of
God. Rom. 12:3. By it the elders obtained a good report, and
assurance in their hearts, through the ancient word of the
Spirit of Christ, who had testified before with their spirit,
that they were the children of God, and heirs of all the
glorious promises. Heb. 11:2; I Pet. 1:11. Hence they willingly
forsook everything, and es-</p>

<p>teemed it nevertheless much more and greater riches, to
suffer affliction with the children of God, than to enjoy all
the temporal pleasures of this world;</p>

<p>for they had respect unto the recompense of the reward, and
to that which was eternal and not temporal. Heb. 11:25, 26; II
Cor. 4:18. For faith looks to that which does not appear here
now, nor is seen with carnal eyes, but which is beheld by the
inner, hidden man, and by the eyes of the heart; and hence they
hold it fast, as though they saw it before their eyes, and
could touch it with their hands; for they judge Him faithful
that promised, that He also will do it, for He cannot deny
Himself. Heb. 11:1, 11; 10:23; II Timothy 2:13. Therefore, my
dear and faithful, look not at the things which are seen; for
the things which are seen are temporal; but the things which
are not seen are eternal. II Cor. 4:18. And Christ says, "He that loveth aught more than me, is not worthy of me."
Matt. 10:37. And in another place He</p>

</div><div id="842"> 

<p>says, "Every one that forsaketh house, home, lands, and
father and mother, yea, also his own life, shall receive a
hundred fold." Matt. 19:29. Hence we must forsake everything
here, and love nothing more than the living God, and show it
with works and by the deed, that we are the children of God,
and not bastards. The righteous must through much affliction
enter into the kingdom of heaven; but the Lord helps them in
all their afflictions; He does not suffer His own to be tempted
above that they are able, but has with the temptation also made
a way to escape. Ps. 34:19; I Cor. 10:13. But the ungodly He
reserves unto the day of judgment to be punished. II Pet.
2:9.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear and much beloved, remember Joseph, who was
tempted by the Egyptian woman to commit whoredom with her; and
she had taken hold of his coat or mantle, and would not let him
go; but he fled from her, and left the coat or mantle, in her
hand, rather than commit this great sin with her. Therefore, my
dear and much beloved, if the harlot of Babylon takes hold of
our coat or mantle rather let go, by the grace of God, your
earthly coat, namely, your temporal life, than that you should
be compelled to commit whoredom with her; well knowing that our
mortal clothing must first be put off before the immortal can
be put on. II Esd. 2:45. And if our earthly house of this
tabernacle be dissolved, we have a building in heaven, a house
not made with hands, but which is eternal. II Corinthians
5:1.</p>

<p>Furthermore, my dear and much beloved, I have undertaken to
write you a little yet, of the words of Christ, where He
says, "If ye love me, keep my commandments. And I will pray the
Father, and he shall give you another Comforter [that he may
abide with you forever]; even the Spirit of truth, whom the
world cannot receive . . . . Yet a little while, and the world
seeth me no more; but ye shall see me, and ye know me, says the
Lord." John 14:15-17, 19, 20. In another place Christ also
warns us, saying, "Beware of false prophets, which come to you
in sheep's clothing, but inwardly they are ravening wolves. Ye
shall know them by their fruits. Do men gather grapes of
thorns, or figs of thistles? Even so every good tree bringeth
forth good fruit; but a corrupt tree bringeth forth evil fruit
. . . . Every tree that bringeth not forth good fruit is hewn
down, and cast into the fire." Matt. 7:15-17, 19.</p>

<p>Herewith I bid you adieu with the sure Word of His grace,
until His coming. The peace of the Lord be with you forever and
ever. Amen. Receive this my brief letter in good part.</p>

<p>Written in my bonds out of love, by me,</p>

<p class="c5">CLEMENT HENDRICKSS,</p>

<p class="c5">Unworthy prisoner in the Lord.</p><br />
<br />

<h1>VEIT GREYENBURGER, A. D. 1570</h1> 

<p>In the year 1570, Veit Greyenburger, a brother, was
apprehended at Wald in Vintschgau as he wastraveling through
there. He had been spied out, and a prize set upon his capture.
When he arrived at the inn, and the peasants noticed him, but
did not well know him, they came into the inn by night, and
when they saw him pray before eating, they put their heads
together and said, "He is the man, or he looks like him;" and
acted as though it were wrong to pray-so plainly could the
devil be seen in them. Hence they watched him in the inn, and
sent word to the judge in the castle at Niedersol, who came
with many footmen and servants, bound his hands behind his
back, and took him to the prison in the castle of Niedersol.
Very soon after he was examined, and led back into prison. Five
weeks afterwards the grand bailiff came from Saltzburg, who
took him with two servants and two footmen to the castle at
Saltzburg, and there put him in prison in chain . A long time,
namely, two years and a half, afterwards, priests came, namely,
the preacher of the Cathedral at Saltzburg, also the
ecclesiastical judge and other fellows. Each had before him ink
and paper, and they addressed Brother Veit," and urged him to
make his defense. The brother said, "What shall I say: You are
accusers and judges, and what you are not able to carry out
yourselves, the judge, the beadles, and the executioner must do
in your stead. You tell it to the Prince, the Prince tells it
to the judge, the judge to the beadles, the beadles to the
executioner, who must finish it; this is your high priest who
helps you to gain the victory." Among other things the brother
also said to them, "The Spirit says plainly what you are; for
Paul writes: 'That in the latter times some shall depart from
the faith, giving heed to seducing spirits, and doctrines of
devils; speaking lies in hypocrisy; having their conscience
seared with a hot iron; forbidding to marry, and commanding to
abstain from meats, which God hath created to be received with
thanksgiving."' I Tim. 4:1-3. Then one of the priests said to
him, "We do not forbid marriage; moreover, I have eaten meat
today." But the brother said, "Ah! it is well known that you
forbid marriage and permit whoredom." But when the priest had
well bethought himself he said, "Do you know what Christ says:
'The Scribes and the Pharisees sit in Moses' seat: all
therefore whatsoever they bid you observe, that observe and
do'"? Matt. 23:2, 3. Then Brother Veit asked them, "Do you think
that you are the same?" They replied, "Yes, we are they by the
will of God." The brother said, "You are they indeed, since you
confess it; but Christ pronounces many woes upon them, and
calls them serpents and a generation of vipers, hypocrites,
fools and blind guides, and such are you, as your own mouth
testifies." Matt. 23. Then he was called an Anabaptist and the
like.</p>

<p>Thereupon Brother Veit asked them, whether they also
considered Paul an Anabaptist. They said, "No." Then he was
asked, "Why then did he baptize again those who had already been
bap-tized with John's baptism, which was certainly</p>

</div><div id="843"> 

<p>from heaven, but was nevertheless not sufficient to
salvation? How much less then can infant baptism, which is from
men, be sufficient?" Then they were silent and Brother Veit
said, "You allow midwives to baptize; where is this written?"
But they did not know, and sat there as dumb as dogs. Thereupon
they asked him, whether he belonged to the Huterite society. He
replied, "Huter was a teacher." They asked, "Is he then your
Messiah?" He answered, "Huter was a pious man, who was burnt at
Innsbruck for his faith and the divine truth; but our Messiah
is Christ. (John 1:21; 4:25.) But what kind of Messiah and father have you at Rome,
and also here in this town?" Then they said that the pope had
nothing to do with them. Then the brother said, "Then you have a
superior here in town?" The priests said that he was not their
father. The brother rejoined, "You certainly said yourselves
before, that your father had sent you forth." Then they did not
know what to say. In this manner he was examined several times;
hence, Christ did not in vain say to His own, "When they shall
bring you into their synagogues, council houses, before
magistrates, powers and the learned, take no thought how or
what ye shall say: for I will give you a mouth and wisdom,
which they shall not be able to gainsay or resist." Luke 21:12,
etc.</p>

<p>Having been imprisoned upward of six years at Saltzburg,
suffering much misery and tribulation, Brother Veit, in the
year 1576, through the help of God, escaped through a window of
his prison. The people in the castle said that it was beyond
the power of man to get out; but with God all things are
possible. Matt. 19:26. Thus he returned to his brethren and the
church, on the 9th of August of said year.</p>

<h2>FOUR FRIENDS OFFERED UP IN MAESTRICHT;<br />
ARENT VAN ESSEN; URSEL HIS WIFE; NEELT<br />
GEN, AN OLD WOMAN; AND TRIJNTGEN,<br />
HER DAUGHTER, IN THE YEAR 1570</h2> 

<p>During the time of freedom following the destruction of the
images, the church at Maestricht grew and flourished,
increasing in number. But when the Duke of Alva came into the
country, many fled out of the city whithersoever they best
could; some, however, remained, among whom there was also a
brother who was an elder and also a school teacher. His name
was Arent van Essen, and he had a wife whose name was Ursel. In
the same house with them there lived another couple, of whom
the wife's name was Trijntgen; and the name of her mother, an
old woman of about seventy-five years, was Neeltgen. These
persons having been betrayed and reported to the authorities,
one of the burgomasters of the city, a man of furious
disposition, came violently, about twelve o'clock in the night,
with his servants, called beadles, to the house of the
schoolmaster, and with great noise apprehended this man Arent,
and thelatter was led in the night to the council house, called
the Landskroon. About an hour after, the burgomaster with his
beadles again went to the house of the aforesaid schoolmaster,
to apprehend two women yet, whom he had not seized before.
Arriving there he also found Neeltgen the old woman, who had
come to see how it was with her daughters Trijntgen and the
others; for she had heard that Arent had been taken away and
imprisoned. He also apprehended these three, and took them
likewise to the Landskroon, to the man, so that in the morning
all four were together, rejoicing together in God, and
comforting one another.</p>

<p>When they were brought before the lords, they each
separately freely confessed their faith (I Pet. 3:15), and that
they had received baptism upon their faith, and what else
belongs to godly doctrines; in which, it seems, Ursel, though
weak, according to the flesh, was not the most timid; for they
separated her from the rest and delivered her to the lords
(that is, to the bailiff and the judges), who judge in cases of
capital punishment. And thus she was taken to the Dinghuys, a
place thus called; where she was greatly harassed with many
threats, all of which she meekly bore and suffered. Thus it
went also with her husband, Arent, whom they likewise delivered
to the lords, and brought him to the prisoners' gate, which is
the highest prison, where also manifold wiles Were employed to
cause him to apostatize.</p>

<p>When this old woman Neeltgen and her daugh. ter Trijntgen,
were also delivered to the lords, and conducted to the
Dinghuys, and came into the street on their way thither, both
of them being joyful and of good courage, Trijntgen for joy
began to sing, thus she was kindled in the Lord.</p>

<p>During their imprisonment in the Dinghuys they were
frequently assailed by the lords, and also by monks and
priests, who sought to move them to renounce their faith; but
God preserved His sheep from the terrible rage of the wolves.
After this they began first to torture Arent. Yea, it was said,
that he was seven Times severely tortured, so that he fell into
despondency in consequence of all these tortures: but the Lord
extended to him His hand, strengthened him, and gave him new
courage, so that he manfully fought through, as we shall hear.
Ursel his wife was likewise brought from the Dinghuys to the
prisoners' gate, where she exhorted her husband not a little,
to the strengthening of his heart. There Ursel was also twice
tortured on the rack; but she faithfully adhered to the truth.
But it did not stop with this torturing in her case; for the
executioner tied her hands together, and drew her up, and as
she was hanging there he cut open her chemise with a knife
baring her back, and severely scourged her with rods; this was
done twice in one day. (It was said that a Jesuit advised this
scourging.) But all this was patiently borne by Ursel, who, as
said above, was also tender of body, so that before her
imprisonment, she had to turn</p>

</div><div id="844"> 

<p>her stockings inside out, and put them on and wear them
thus, because she could not bear the seams of the stockings
inside on her limbs; but now, through the help of God, she was
able to endure torturing and scourging. Neeltgen the old woman
was also led to the torture, and when she came to the rack or
ladder, she went and lay down upon it of her own accord; but
the lords considering her age and feebleness, she was not
tortured. They said to her, "It is not your first time, namely,
that she lay on the rack; for they knew that she had also once
in her youth been imprisoned and tortured for the truth, from
which imprisonment she had been delivered in a remarkable
manner. But her daughter Trijntgen was treated far less gently,
for she was tortured very severely; and when she was taken from
the rack almost in a fainting condition, she was laid upon a
bed for a little while; but as soon as she was recovered a
little she had to go on the rack again. And when she was
tortured severely she cried aloud, "O Lord, succor me, and keep
my lips." For she was severely tortured, that she should name
others; for they were thirsting for more blood. And God heard
her prayer, and kept her lips, so that they could obtain
nothing from her which implicated her neighbor. When Trijntgen was tortured
the last time, she said, "I praise and thank the Lord." Mother
Neeltgen, who was not far off, hearing her daughter speak,
asked, "Is that my child?" Hearing this, Trijntgen replied, "Yes,
my mother;" and fell on her neck and kissed her.</p>

<p>On the 9th of January, in the year 1570, Arent and Ursel his
wife were notified in the name of the lords, that each was to
be put to a stake and burned, in which message they greatly
rejoiced, because they were to be counted worthy to die for the
name of Christ; and were full of joy that day and night,
thanking and praising God, and thus waited for the day of their
redemption.</p>

<p>In the morning a town beadle came to Ursel, and enjoined her
in the name of his lords, that she should not speak in the
street on her way to execution; this the beadle said in the
presence of the lords. Ursel said to the lords, "And may I not
sing a little, and say something now and then?" But this they
would not permit her, and said among themselves, "We hear now
what her intentions are." They further said to the
executioner, "Do as you are commanded, and stop her mouth." The
execu-</p>

<p style="font-style: normal"><br /></p>

</div><div id="845"> 

<p>tioner had a piece of wood, which he put in Ursel's mouth,
and tied up her mouth with a cloth. And as they had been taken
back from the prisoners' gate, where they were tortured, to the
Dinghuys, whence they were to go to execution, and where also
Neeltgen and Trijntgen were still imprisoned, Trijntgen, when
Ursel was led away from the Dinghuys, had come to a window
above, and when she saw Ursel being led forth to death, she
cried aloud over all the people, saying to Ursel, "Dear sister,
contend manfully, for the crown of life is prepared for you."
Thus Ursel, with her mouth gagged, went to the Vrijthof (the
place where she was to be offered up), the people complaining
greatly, because her mouth had been gagged so that she could
not speak one word.</p>

<p>When Ursel arrived at the scaffold which had been erected,
she ascended it quietly as a lamb, and went directly into the
hut, and the executioner immediately set fire to the same; and
thus she was burned to ashes, and became a burnt offering unto
the Lord.</p>

<p>Very shortly after, Arent, Ursel's husband, was also
notified to prepare himself for death, which he willingly
received, and prepared himself accordingly. Before he was led
forth to death, they also stopped and tied up his mouth, which
presented a pitiful sight. They had erected a scaffold in
another place than where Ursel bad been put to death, namely,
in the Friday or cattle market, near the Poel. What the lords
sought by putting them to death separately was not really
known; but common report had it, that the lords did it in order
that Arent and Ursel might not derive any comfort from each
other. When Arent was thus led, with his mouth gagged, to this
place, a joyful and undismayed_mind could be perceived. Having
ascended the scaffold, he fell upon his knees, and fervently
offered up his prayer.</p>

<p>He then arose and went into the hut, where he divested
himself of part of his clothing; but as this took up some time,
the bailiff, who was present on horseback, called out to the
executioner, "Go on with your work;" which the latter
immediately did, and lighted the fire, and thus this martyr was
likewise burned to ashes, as a witness of Jesus Christ.</p>

<p>Above we said, that the old woman Neeltgen, and Trijntgen
her daughter, remained still imprisoned in the Dinghuys. On the
23d of January of the same year, these two also received notice
from the lords, that they should have to die as the others;
which notice they so joyfully received, that time seemed very
long to them before that day arrived. For they sought rest
above in heaven with their dear heavenly Father, who, though He
suffers His own to be tempted here, yet does never depart with
His mercy from them, but delivers them out of all their
distress. Hence, they were rejoiced in the Lord above measure,
thanked and praised Him the whole night, and thus waited
longingly for the day of their redemption. In the morning, when
they were to be led to execution, the executioner puta piece of
wood into the mouth of each, and tied it up with a cloth; and
thus they joyfully went (escorted) to the Vrijthof. On the way
Trijntgen put her hands up to the cloth with which her mouth
was tied, and began to draw it away and to say something, and
to call out why they died. But this they would in no wise
tolerate; hence the executioner went up to her and laid his
hand upon her mouth, and ordered her to go into the hut; for
most of this was done on the scaffold. And thus Trijntgen and
her dear mother were led into the hut, and both burned to
ashes, having commended their souls into the hands of God;
which took place on the 24th of January, A. D. 1569.</p>

<h2>ANNEKEN OGIERS, DAUGHTER OF JAN OGIERS, AND<br />
WIFE OF ADRIAEN BOOGAERT, DROWNED FOR<br />
THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, AT<br />
HAARLEM, A. D. 1570</h2> 

<p>The misery of persecution continued, so that almost nowhere
liberty could be found for an upright Christian soul. Herein
also those of Haarlem, in Holland, incurred guilt; which
appeared in the year of our Lord 1570, for then they laid their
hands (which they had previously several times imbrued in the
blood of the saints) on a God-fearing woman named Anneken, the
daughter of Jan Ogiers, and wife of Adriaen Boogaert, who
thirteen years previously had betaken herself from the darkness
of popery to the true light of the Gospel, and, in proof that
she desired to be a disciple of Jesus, had been baptized upon
her faith, leaving and renouncing the pope and the Romish
church, and, on the other hand, accepting and confessing Jesus
Christ as the Son of God, and His church (namely, the
cross-bearing church of the Anabaptists) as His beloved bride,
wife and own body, by which she was then recognized as a member
and fellow sister.</p>

<p>When she in her imprisonment could by no means be turned
from her faith, the rulers of the city of Haarlem, concluded
her trial and, on the 17th of June, A. D. 1570, publicly in
court, pronounced sentence of death upon her, namely, that she
should be drowned and buried under the gallows. The sentence
(excepting the title) reads word for word as follows:</p>

<h2>SENTENCE OF DEATH OF ANNEKEN, JAN OGIERS'<br />
DAUGHTER</h2> 

<p>Whereas Anneken, Jan Ogiers' daughter, and wife of Adriaen
Boogaert, porcelain-maker, prisoner, has confessed without
torture and iron bonds, that about thirteen years ago, she,
rejecting the Christian baptism received by her in her infancy,
was rebaptized at Amsterdam, contrary to our Catholic faith,
and the unity of the holy Roman church, and also in contempt of
the decrees of his royal majesty, our most gracious lord; and
what is still worse, though she has been instructed for the
best concerning her error and heresy, she still</p>

</div><div id="846"> 

<p>obstinately persists therein; therefore, the judges, having
heard the demand made in conclusion by Jacob Foppens, bailiff,
of this city of Haarlem, in the name of his majesty, as Count
of Holland, against said prisoner, that she should be condemned
by their sentence, to be conducted to the scaffold here, and
executed with fire, until death should ensue; and all her
property confiscated for the benefit of his royal majesty,
according to the decrees of his majesty aforesaid; have, by
reason of what has been mentioned, condemned said Anneken, Jan
Ogiers' daughter, prisoner, and by these presents do condemn
her to be executed with water and drowned here in the city
hall, until death ensues, and the body to be buried under the
gallows; and declare all her property forfeited for the benefit
of his majesty. Thus read from the city hall, by the sound of
the bell, on the 17th of June, A. D. 1570, in presence of Jacob
Foppens, bailiff, Mr. Gerrit van Ravensberge, Mr. Lambrecht van
Roosvelt, Mr. Huge Bol van Zanen, Aelbrecht van Schagen, Mr.
Gijsbrecht van Nesse, Wouter van Rollandt, and Frans Janss
Teyng, judges.</p>

<p>Extracted from the first book of penal sentences of the city
of Haarlem (beginning A. D. 1539, and concluding the 27th of
October, A. D. 1582; preserved in the archives of the city of
Haarlem) and, after collation, found to accord with it; by me,
the undersigned, secretary of the aforesaid city, the 14th of
July, A. D. 1659.</p>

<p>The above-mentioned sentence, we obtained, after much
trouble, from the hands of the secretary of civil and criminal
matters, or clerk of the criminal court of the city of Haarlem,
through the instrumentality of one of our good friends, H. V.,
just as the same was read in court at the hour of the death of
the aforesaid woman, and is still at the present day found in
the city records of that place; from the particulars of which
we have written the account that precedes the sentence.</p>

<h2>BARBER JANS, A. D. 1570</h2> 

<p>At Haarlem in Holland, in the year 1570, a woman, named
Barber Jans, was apprehended, because she had apostatized from
the Romish church, and endeavored to be a follower of Christ;
who, having boldly confessed her faith, and firmly adhering to
it, was sentenced to death on the 13th of February, and
secretly drowned for the Gospel's sake, and then burned to
ashes.</p>

<h2>ALLERT JANSS, A. D. 1570</h2> 

<p>In the same year 1570, on the 13th of April, also a pious
brother, named Allert Janss, was brought prisoner to Haarlem;
who, after many temptations and assaults, because of his
steadfastness in the divine truth, an the 6th of May, after the
sentence had been pronounced, boldly went to the stake, to be
burnt alive to ashes, and thus offered up a sacrifice,
well-pleasing to God, and serving as an example to all the
God-fearing.</p>

<h2>ANDRIES N., WITH HIS FATHER AND BROTHER,<br />
A. D. 1570</h2> 

<p>In this same year also a brother named Andries N., because
he, having died unto the world, had entered the service of God,
was apprehended at Antwerp, and about the same time also his
father and brother, who, being imprisoned together, rejoiced in
the Lord, that they were counted worthy to suffer for His name,
which they also boldly confessed before the secular rulers, and
professed a good profession of their faith, to which they
firmly adhered, notwithstanding the sufferings or vexations
which, by subtilty, promises and threats, were inflicted upon
them on this account; so that they persevered unto the end in
the truth, in the true faith, and in the love to God. All three
were then sentenced and burnt, and thus, offering up their
sacrifice, as a sweet smelling savor unto God, helped to
fulfill the number of their brethren that had gone before.</p>

<h2>ANDRIES N., A. D. 1570</h2> 

<p>In this same year 1570, there was also apprehended in
Haarlem, for his faith and the truth, a brother named Andries
N., who was tortured very cruelly for the space of three hours,
but nevertheless, then as well as in other temptations and
sufferings, always steadfastly adhered to his faith. Finally he
was sentenced to death and burned, and thus, as a valiant
soldier of the Lord, fought a good fight; hence, he is worthy
not only to be remembered here for an example and perpetual
memorial, but also to inherit the kingdom of his heavenly
Father, which is prepared for all the pious.</p>

<h2>JORIS VAN MEESCH AND JACOB LOWIJS<br />
ABOUT 1570</h2> 

<p>Christ says to His disciples, "The brother shall deliver up
the brother to death, and the father the child: and the
children shall rise up against their parents, and cause them to
be put to death. And ye shall be hated of all men for my name's
sake</p>

<p>but he that endureth to the end shall be saved." Matt.
10:21, 22. This also appeared about the year 1570 (for we do
not know the exact time), when two pious followers of Christ,
named Joris van Meesch and Jacob Lowijs, were apprehended at
Ghent, in Flanders, where, after many temptations and severe
threats (from the papists) they were put to death, testifying
to and confirming the faith of the eternal truth with their
blood. Hence, they shall at the last day be graciously accepted
of God, and receive the crown of eternal glory at the hand of
the Lard.</p>

<p>I say unto you, Love your enemies, bless them that curse
you, do good to them that hate you, and pray for them which
despitefully use you, and</p>

</div><div id="847"> 

<h2>JAN THE RIBBON WEAVER, JOOST THE WHEEL<br />
WRIGHT WITH HIS WIFE, MAERTEN VAN<br />
WYJCKE WITH LIJSKEN HIS WIFE<br />
AND JELIS THE MASON, IN THE<br />
YEAR 1570</h2>

<p>In the year 1570 there were apprehended at Antwerp, and put
to death at the same place for the testimony of Jesus, the
following God-fearing persons: Jan the ribbon weaver, Joost the
wheelwright with his wife, Maerten van Wijcke with Lijsken his
wife, and Jelis the mason's tender. Lijsken, however, the wife
of Maerten van Wijcke, was kept imprisoned for one year, and
then, on the 2d of May, 1571, burnt alive at said place.</p>

<p>Thus these six pious, godly persons were martyred by the
tyrants and bloodthirsty, not on account of any crime, much
less for any heresy, but only for following the genuine faith
of the truth. Herein the latter followed the footsteps of their
forefathers, the false prophets, who thus persecuted and killed
the upright followers of the truth from the beginning. Hence,
it is to be feared, that they will repent when it is too late,
and will also receive the same recompense with those whose
works they herein followed. But those who followed the true
prophet Christ Jesus in true obedience and upright faith,
shall, on the other hand, upon Mount Zion, be clothed in white
raiment, by their Bridegroom Christ Jesus for whose sake they
suffered this, receive palms in their hands, and be crowned
with crowns of eternal glory, which no one shall ever be able
to take from them.</p>

<h2>FAES DIRCKS, AND TWO OTHERS, A. D. 1570</h2> 

<p>In the year 1570, on the 7th of April, there was apprehended
for the Word of God and the testimony of Jesus, at Gouda, in
Holland, a pious follower of Christ, named Faes Dircks, a
chairmaker by trade. Afterwards, the 27th of May, he was very
unmercifully and tyrannically tortured by the bloodthirsty
servants of antichrist, and led forth under the blue sky, and
on the 30th of May of the same year, put to death, and burned
for the genuine faith of the truth, following the footsteps of
his Lord and Master Christ Jesus. Some time prior to this two
other pious followers of Christ were put to. death at Gouda,
for the testimony of Jesus, one of whom according to the
counsel of God, was not yet baptized upon his faith; but the
God of all grace, who knows the heart, mind and thoughts of all
men, accepted in him the will for the deed. Thus they suffered
with Christ, and shall be received. with Him into eternal
glory, at that time when all the earthly, carnal generation of
men shall weep and lament over themselves eternally.</p>

<p>Subsequently, when Gouda was taken by the troops of the
prince of Orange, it was deliberated upon to exhume the priest
who had been the cause of the imprisonment and death of said
Faes Dircks, and of the dispersion and persecution of many of
those who feared God. They afterwards changedtheir mind, but
hired a man for about four guilders, who took down the bones of
Faes Dircks from the scaffold, and opened the grave of the
aforesaid priest, who had previously died, and been interred in
the church of the Franciscans, near the high altar, and then
laid the bones of Faes Dircks upon the body of the priest; thus
deriding this traitor, because he had deemed the God-fearing
unworthy to live with him in the same town, and, after their
death, their bodies unworthy of burial, but they had to be
given as food to the birds of heaven. But at the speedy coming
of Christ from heaven, this idolatrous priest shall find, when
it will be too late for repentance, who of them both will be
acknowledged and accepted by the chief Shepherd as an
acceptable sheep, or as a rejected goat.</p>

<p>Concerning this martyr Faes Dircks~ we have obtained three
examinations, namely, two without torture and one on the rack,
just as the same have been extracted by the secretary there
from the town records of Gouda, which we therefore will
communicate to our fellow believers for the greater
confirmation of the foregoing account; they read as
follows.</p>

<h2>COPY OF THE CONFESSION MADE BY FAES DIRCKS<br />
IMPRISONED HERE IN THIENDEWEGS GATE</h2> 

<p class="c25">First Examination</p>

<p>The 11th of May, 1570, the bailiff of Gouda brought to
examination the hereinafter mentioned person: there being
present, Gijsbert Jan Maertenss, and Gerraert Huygen,
burgomasters, Dirck Andries, Mr. Heyndrick Jacobs, Mr. Cornelis
Heyndricks, judges.</p>

<p>Faes Dircks, chairmaker, about thirty-one years of age, says
that he is a native citizen of Gouda, and that on last Easter
Day he heard the pastor of Gouda preach; that those who go to
the Lord's table do not receive roasted, sodden or raw meat,
but that they receive the roasted flesh of our Lord, roasted on
Good Friday, on the tree of the cross. Hence, hearing this, he
went out of the church, since he did not feel well at this, nor
deem himself worthy to receive it, and did not go to the Lord's
table.</p>

<p>He; says and confesses, that he does not consider the
sacrament of the altar real flesh and blood, and this for the
reason that there is but one God.</p>

<p>He also confesses, that about a year ago he was baptized at
Rotterdam, and that he did not know the one that baptized him,
but that the latter delivered an exhortation, saying that the
Lord had said"That all that believe and are baptized shall be
saved."</p>

<p>He further says, that the one who baptized him baptized him
in the name of the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost, and
that water was poured over his head out of a basin, and that
there were present ten or twelve persons, one of whom was named
Wiert Claess, of Gouda.</p>

<p>When asked whether Euwout the barber, and Dirck Jacobs, the
shoemaker, or others from Gouda</p>

</div><div id="848"> 

<p>were not also present with him at Rotterdam, he says,"No,"
but that Wiert Claess was present there, and that to his
knowledge Wiert was not baptized at that time.</p>

<p>NOTE.-Here follow some more questions and answers, which are
treated of in the following examination; hence we have omitted
to place them here. In conclusion the secretary wrote: Thus
done on the days and in the presence aforesaid, in the
Thiendewegs Gate; I being present as secretary of Gouda.</p>

<p class="c5">JORIS JACOBS.</p>

<p class="c8"><i>Second Examination</i></p>

<p>The 19th of May, 1570, the bailiff brought Faes Dircks, the
second time to examination, in the presence of the pastor of
Gouda', Mr. Joost Boorgoos, Gijsbert Jan Maertenss; Jan
Gerritts Pels, and Gerrit Huygen, burgomasters, Gerrit Gerrit
Bouwenss, Dlrck Andriess, Mr. Heyndrick Jacobs, Floris
Gijsberts; and Mr. Cornelis Heyndricks, judges.</p>

<p>The afore-mentioned Faes Dircks, when he was asked whether
he still persisted in and adhered to what he said and confessed
on the 11th of this month, replied that he still adhered to
it.</p>

<p>He says, that he believes in Almighty God, and in Jesus
Christ; who was born of the virgin Mary. He also says, that
infants cannot be regenerated, since they have no understanding
to believe, and that water cannot save them.</p>

<p>When he was asked whether he did not believe that Christ
Jesus is in the holy sacrament he says,"No," since there is not
more than one God, and He is in heaven, and not here in the
sacrament. He says that he considers himself a sheep of Christ;
and that he regards Christ as, his Shepherd, and that he knows
no other shepherd.</p>

<p>When he was asked who baptized him, he says that he does not
know, and that he never saw the one that baptized him, either
before or since; and that no one'was present there from Gouda,
except Wiert Claess; who brought him there, and that he [Faes
Direks] arrived in the place on an evening, and stayed there
the whole night and the following day, until the evening when
he was baptized.; this took place at Rotterdam, in a house, in
a large garret.*</p>

<p>NOTE.-Here follow again solve questions and answers, -which
are more fully explained in the third and last examination; and
which we have omitted in order to avoid repetition. The
secretary then, after stating the time when, the place where,
and the persons in whose presence this took place, again
subscribes himself, by the name of Joris Jacobs, secretary of
Gouda.</p>

<p class="c8"><i>Third examination on the rack</i></p>

<p>On the 27th of May, 1579, Johan Pieterss, mayor of Gouda, in
the name of Sir Cornelis Mylo, castellan and bailiff of the
city of Gouda, brought Faes Dircks to the torture, in the
presence of Gijsbert</p>

<p class="c8">* Behold here the strait of the believers in
those times, who to hear the Word of God occasionally had to
spend whole days and nights in order to attend the meeting.</p>
<p>Jan
Maertens, Gerritt Huyge Hapkooper, burgomasters; Gerrit Gerrit
Bouwenss, Dirck Andriess, Dirck Janss Lonck, and Mr. Cornelis
Heyndricks, judges.</p>

<p>Faes Dircks being asked whether he still adheres to the
confession which he made on the 19th of this month, says that
he still adheres to it.</p>

<p>When brought to the torture, and asked, in whose house he
was baptized,'he said he did not know, but subsequently
understood that it took place at the house of a shoemaker named
Michael, residing near the East Gate, at Rotterdam.</p>

<p>He says that when he was baptized, about eight or nine
others were baptized with him, among whom were Dirck Jacobs, a
shoemaker, and Jan Adrienss, a tanner, and that the wife of
Michael, the shoemaker, and Wiert' Claess, were present when
the baptism took place, but that Wiert was not baptized.</p>

<p>When asked whether Euwout the barber, Jan Aertss, the
weaver, and Jan de Bagijn were also present when he was
baptized, he says '.'No," and he says further that Dirck'
Jacobss and the tanner came early in the morning before
daylight into the house where they were baptized.</p>

<p>He says that the one who baptized him had a strange
language, and talked somewhat loud.</p>

<p>He says, that a woman named Maertjen Philips, residing
in'the Cingel, is of his faith, and also Willem fanss, cutler,
Wiert Claess, and-Jan Aertss, weaver.</p>

<p>When asked whether Euwout the barber was'of the same
persuasion and faith with him, he says that he does not know
and that he has not had any conversation with him' in regard to
matters of faith, but that he has been at, his house. He says
that he does not know whether Jan de Bagijn is also of the same
faith as he that speaks or not.</p>

<p>Again; The above confession .was then read to the aforesaid
Faes Dircks, under the blue sky, without torture and iron
bonds, and being asked whether he adhered to it, he replied
that he did, and that he desired mercy, and not justice. Done
in the presence of the full court.</p>

<p class="c5">JORIS JACOBS.</p>

<p>NOTE.-Since not only the three afore-mentioned examinations,
but also the sentence of death of said friend of God, were sent
us by the present secretary of the town of Gouda, we. will add
the latter here, as it reads in the ,original, that no one may
in any wise doubt what has been related..</p>

<h2>EXTRACT FROM THE BOOK OF CRIMINAL SENTENCES<br />
OF THE TOWN OF GOUDA</h2> 

<p><i>Faes Dircks executed with fire</i></p>

<p>Whereas Faes Dircks, native citizen of this .town of Gouda,
at present a prisoner, has confessed, without torture and iron
bonds, under the blue sky, before my lords of the court, that
about a little over a year ago he was rebaptized at Rotterdam,
by a man whom he does not know; that he also for two</p>

</div><div id="849"> 

<p>years back has rejected communion with the holy church, our
mother, and does not believe in the holy, worshipful sacrament
of the altar, in which lies the salvation of man: without that
said Faes Dircks has been willing to repent of this, to be
instructed otherwise, but has added, that he would not listen
to him that desired to instruct him, and to turn him from his
error and heresy, all this being contrary to the written laws
and decrees of his royal majesty published at different times
in these countries; therefore the judges with the mature
deliberation of the council, having examined and weighed all
that is of importance in this case on the behalf and in the
name of the King of Spain, as Count of Holland, Zealand and
Friesland, our common lord and prince, have condemned the
aforesaid Faes Dircks, at present a prisoner, and condemn him
by these presents, to be brought to the scaffold without this
town, and there to be executed with fire; and declare all his
property confiscated for the benefit of his royal majesty;
unless the aforesaid Faes Dircks depart publicly before the
church, from his aforesaid heresy, and declare and confess that
he has been led astray and deceived; in such case the judges
reserve to themselves the punishment to be inflicted upon him
for his crime, the same to be according as they shall find
proper pursuant to the decrees of his majesty aforesaid.*</p>

<p>Done by Jan,Claess Diert, and Simon Pieters, burgomasters,
summoned, Gijsbert Jan Maertenss and Gerritt Huyges,
burgomasters, Dirck Ottes van Slingerlandt, judge, summoned,
Gerrit Gerrit Bouwenss, Dirck Andriess, Mr. Heyndrick Jacobs,
Dirck Janss Lonck, Mr. Cornelis Heyndricks, judges, and
announced to Dirck van Necq, judge, summoned. Published on the
30th of May, in the year <i>1570.</i> Subscribed.</p>

<p class="c5">JORIS JACOBS,</p>

<p class="c5">Secretary of Gouda, A. D. <i>1570.</i></p>

<h2>ADRIAEN PIETERS AND BARBER JOOSTEN, IN THE<br />
YEAR <i>1570</i></h2> 

<p>In the year <i>1570,</i> there were imprisoned at Haarlem in
Holland, a brother named Adriaen Pieters, and a sister named
Barber Joosten, not on account of any crime or heresy, but only
because they sought to follow Christ in the regeneration, for
which they were envied by the servants of antichrist, who
sought with many tyrannical means to draw them from Christ, and
to make them follow their self-invented idolatry which
militates against God. But these, as giants in the faith,
valiantly resisted, through the grace of God, the snares of
Satan. Hence, they were condemned and sentenced to death by the
rulers of darkness. Adriaen Pieters was burnt, and Barber
Joosten was drowned in great steadfastness, and thus they both
remained faithful to the Lord their God unto death and hence
out of grace, obtained the crown of eternal life.</p>

<p class="c8">* That is, in this case, he would have been
executed with the sword, but as he remained steadfast, it did
not come to this.</p>

<h2>MAERTEN KARETTIER, A. D. <i>1570</i></h2> 

<p>Maerten Karettier of Busbeke, who also would rather suffer
affliction with the children of God, than enjoy the pleasures
of sin for a season, and live in joy with the world, was
apprehended for his faith at Rijssel and there made a good
confession of it and evinced great steadfastness, for which
reason he finally, as a valiant witness of God, had to taste
death.</p>

<h2>LIJNTGEN KEMELS, A. D. <i>1570</i></h2> 

<p>In like manner, there was also apprehended, at Luyck, a
sister named Lijntgen Kemels, who, after having made a good and
steadfast confession of her faith, was burnt there, and thus
went boldly, with her lamp burning, to meet her bridegroom, who
also joyfully took her as a wise virgin in to his [marriage]
feast.</p>

<br />

<h1>JOOST VERKINDERT AND LAUWERENS ANDRIESS, BOTH PUT TO DEATH FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, AT ANTWERP, THE 13TH OF SEPTEMBER, A. D. <i>1570</i></h1> 

<h2><i>A letter of Joost Verkindert to his wife,
mother,</i><br />
<i>brother, and sister; written on the 7th of June,</i><br />
<i>being the ninth day of his imprisonment</i></h2> 

<p>Grace and mercy from God the heavenly Father, and the merits
of our dear Lord Jesus Christ, who redeemed us on the tree of
the cross by the shedding of His precious blood, when we were
yet His enemies, together with the consolation of the Holy
Ghost, who comforts all afflicted hearts; all this I wish you
together as a friendly and heartfelt greeting. I wholly commend
myself to you, and also thank you all for the love shown me,
and the exhortation and consolation in my present great
tribulation, which I must now receive as permitted and
foreordained by the Lord. For Christ says, "The very hairs of
your head are all numbered. Matthew 10:30. Nevertheless, in
going out I was apprehensive of meeting the officer, which also
happened, since the plan of meeting together at that time was
not well-timed; however all things must have a cause. I must
relate to you something about our apprehension, how the bailiff
with some of his servants met me and Lauwerens and asked, "Whence do you come? and whither are you going?" Hearing
this we were both greatly consternated, so that they instantly
perceived what kind of people we were. They immediately bound
us, and conducted us above; and while they were leading us they
greatly cursed us and called us rogues. Having arrived at the
prison, they forthwith examined Lauwerens alone. Afterwards I
was also brought before them, and was asked, whether I had
received another baptism besides the one received in my
infancy. I asked him in return, what he had to say against me.
He said, "You are rebaptized; your servant has told me." I
answered, "Let me alone; I shall tomorrow confess my faith
before</p>

</div><div id="850"> 

<p>the margrave." But he was not satisfied with that, for he
had a notebook to write in; and when he could obtain no other
information from me, he became angry and said, "I shall make you
say yes or no." I said, "My lord, be satisfied for this time."
And when he saw that he could not obtain anything further from
me, he made me sit in the emperor's chair, and thus they left
me, I thinking that they were going for the executioner. While
lying there alone I was troubled by various thoughts; moreover
Satan greatly tormented me with wife and children, sustenance,
and many other temptations, on account of which I heartily
wept, calling to God for succor, and began to measure my life
and conversation with the Word of God, from the beginning of my
Christian life up to this present day, and found no cause just
enough to cease from all the severe labor which I had done.
Though I have often transgressed the commandment of God, yet it
was not done wantonly and I found grace with God.</p>

<p>The next day we were both brought into the tower where
Lauwerens was tortured. They further asked me concerning my age
and faith, all of which I freely confessed to them, and was not
ashamed. They asked whether I had a wife. And when I had
said,"Yes," they asked whether I had children. I said, "Two."
They asked what their names were, and whether they were
baptized. I answered, "They are not baptized, for I recognize no
infant baptism; we also find in the Scriptures but one baptism
upon faith, as Christ left it to us, and His apostles
practiced." When I pronounced the names of the children, they
laughed, because the children had names without being
christened. We further had many other words, which it would
take too long to relate; hence I write this to you very briefly
for I am so closely guarded, that no one can speak with me; nor
have I ever conversed with Lauwerens alone. Hence, keep quiet
about everything, for I am apprehensive of being tormented
still much more, of which I am greatly afraid according to the
flesh; for they have here so many tortures, chains for
suspending, pulley, cords, and rack, on which I was tortured,
as you know.</p>

<p>O friends, let all of you heartily entreat the Lord for me,
and cause prayer to be made for me. Acts 12:5. O I pray the
Lord with tears; yea, I water my couch with my tears before the
Lord (Ps. 6:6), that He should make me worthy of Him through
His grace.</p>

<p>Herewith I commend you to the Lord and bid you all
adieu.</p>

<p>Written in bonds by me,</p>

<p class="c5">JOOST VERKINDERT,</p>

<p class="c5">Unworthy prisoner in the Lord.</p>

<p>NOTE.-He was apprehended on the 30th of May, and put to death
on the 13th of September of the same year.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER EDIFYING LETTER AND EXHORTATION<br />
OF JOOST VERKINDERT, WRITTEN IN HIS IMPRISONMENT, THE 20TH 
OF JUNE, TO THE CHURCH OF GOD AT A.</h2> 

<p>Grace, mercy and peace from God the heavenly Father, and our
Lord Jesus Christ, who loved us, and washed us from our sins in
His own blood; together with the consolation of the Holy Ghost,
who proceeds from the Father and the Son, to comfort all them
that are in any tribulation and affliction for His holy name's
sake. To Him be praise, honor, glory, dominion, power and
majesty, forever and ever. Amen. This we wish you all as a
friendly greeting, my beloved brethren and sisters in the Lord.
We prisoners for the testimony of our dear Lord Jesus Christ
inform you, that it is still tolerably well with us according
to the flesh; but as regards the spirit, we would that it were
better, for we are compassed about with such a vile, evil
flesh, which always lusts against the will of God, and shrinks
much from suffering; however we must suffer and fight, if we
are to overcome. For, dear brethren and sisters, the crown lies
not at the beginning nor in the middle, but at the end; there
the conflict lies; then the gold is tried by the fire of
affliction, which no one knows better, than those who have been
tried therein.</p>

<p>It is indeed true what the apostle says, "No chastening for
the present seemeth to be joyous, but grievous: nevertheless,
afterward it yieldeth the peaceable fruit of righteousness unto
them which are exercised thereby." Heb. 12:11.</p>

<p>Further, my dear friends, brethren and sisters, we pray you
by the great love of our Lord Jesus Christ, that you be all of
the same mind, and let there be no discord among you nor any
strife about any matter; but let each seek to be wise and
prudent in that which is good, and simple in what is evil,
remembering the words of the apostle where he says, "If there be
therefore any consolation in Christ, if any comfort of love, if
any fellowship of the Spirit, if any bowels and mercies,
fulfill ye my joy, that ye be likeminded, having the same love,
being of one accord, of one mind. Let nothing be done through
strife or vainglory; but in lowliness of mind let each esteem
other better than themselves. Look not every man on his own
things, but every man also on the things of others. Yea, let
this mind be in you, which was also in Christ Jesus, who,
though he was rich, became poor for our sakes, that through his
poverty he might make us rich, and purify unto himself a holy
church, not having spot or wrinkle, or any such thing; which he
hath purchased with his own blood, that they should be holy and
without blame, and walk in love." Phil. 2:1-5; I Cor. 10:24; II
Corinthians 8:9; Eph. 5:26, 27; Acts 20:28; Eph. 1:4.</p>

<p>This church has now for a time suffered much sorrow; may the
complaint ascend to the merciful Father in heaven, concerning
the misery and sad-</p>

</div><div id="851"> 

<p>ness that have come upon Zion. But the God of all grace be
praised for His great mercy which He has yet shown the church
at Antwerp, which continues still in good peace and unity (as I
think); wherefore there is great joy ar_d gladness there
according to the spirit, but great distress according to the
flesh. For the Lord tries His people with tribulation and
distress, as Christ says, "They shall put you out of the
synagogues: yea, the time cometh, that whosoever killeth you
will think that he doeth God service. And these things will
they do unto you, because they have not known my Father, nor
me." John 16:2, 3. For if they had known Him, they would not
have crucified the Lord of glory. I Corinthians 2:8. And though
the persecution is not so severe in some places, the Lord can
nevertheless try men by other means, by strife, discord,
strutting and boasting, reveling and banqueting, in short by
carnal works, all of which are not according to our vocation.
Not, dear friends, that I would here accuse any one; but out of
brotherly love we exhort every one; for before God nothing can
be hid, for He will bring to light all that is done in secret.
I Cor. 4:5.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear friends, let us not deceive the Lord; for
His eyes are as a flame of fire, and He is a mighty, powerful
and strong God; and sees everywhere in secret and openly; hence
He may well be feared, for He has not spoken a single word in
vain, as He says by the prophet, that the Word which goeth
forth out of His mouth does not return unto Him void, but does
accomplish all that He pleases. Rev. 1:14; Isa. 55:11.</p>

<p>My affectionately beloved brethren and sisters in the Lord,
receive this letter from your poor, weak brother in good part;
for it has been written at the request of some brethren, if
peradventure you might be comforted and refreshed a little by
our simple epistle, for we have written these few lines out of
cordial affection, and because we should exhort one another
while it is called today; for we hope soon, by the grace of the
Lord, here to put off our flesh. Heb. 3:13; II Pet. 1:14.</p>

<p>O friends, the way that leads into life is so strait and
narrow; but the way that leads into hell is so broad and easy
for the flesh. Truly indeed does the prophet Isaiah say, that
hell has opened wide her mouth, and both princes and the common
people descend into it, yea, they go to hell like sheep to the
slaughter. Isa. 5:14.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear friends, let us take diligent heed, that we
may not have received the grace of God in vain; but let us
constantly remember the days of our illumination, and how
little we then were in our own eyes, when we humbled ourselves
under the mighty hand of God, yielding up ourselves entirely,
to serve the Lord in holiness and righteousness acceptable
before Him. Heb. 10:32; I Pet. 5:6; Luke 1:75. For we were then
all like Saul when he was anointed king, who was of the least
of the tribes of Israel and little in his own eyes. But when he
became proud, the Lord rejectedhim. For the Lord said to
Samuel, "Go and tell Saul to destroy Amalek from the earth, both
man and beast." But Saul followed his own judgment and spared
the king, and the best of the oxen, and of the sheep, to
sacrifice them to the Lord; whereby he transgressed the
commandment of the Lord, and was disobedient to His voice,
notwithstanding the Lord ,desired obedience and not sacrifice.
I Sam. 15,</p>

<p>Behold, dear friends, for what a small matter Saul was
rejected; hence let us take good heed, for He is still the same
God. This is also the case with part of us, that we take too
great liberty in our faith, in consequence of which we are
rejected, and then do not know ourselves where the fault lies.
Now a spirit of contention comes upon us, causing the pious to
sigh and mourn: so that thereby division and schism are wrought
in the church of God, which mostly occurs where Christians have
great liberty. How much it is now like it was in the days of
Israel; when they were in peace [from without], they waged war
against one another, so that many thousands fell, when they
fought against the Benjamites. Judg. 20. Hence, my dear
brethren and sisters, let Christ Jesus be an example unto you,
who has called us in peace. I Cor. 7:15. For the fruit of the
Spirit is all manner of goodness, righteousness, and joy in the
Holy Ghost. Eph. 5:9. And let us take good heed that we do not
become like the church of Laodicea, which was neither cold nor
hot, and thought she was rich and increased with goods, and had
need of nothing. But the Spirit answered her, saying, "I commend
thee to buy of me gold tried in the fire, that thou mayest be
rich; and white raiment, that thou mayest be clothed, and that
the shame of thy nakedness do not appear; and anoint thine eyes
with eyesalve, that thou mayest see." Rev. 3:18. Hence, it is
daily necessary to exhort one another with the word of the
Lord, which is the true mirror and plumbline by which to
measure our life and conversation according to our weakness. I
say according to our weak ability; for if God should enter into
judgment with us, no one could stand before Him. Ps. 143:2.
Hence, no man may or can justify himself before God. But we
must always remain debtors, remembering that we come short in
many things. Matthew 6:12.</p>

<p>Let us therefore take diligent heed, and have our
predecessors constantly before our eyes, namely, Abraham,
Isaac, Jacob, Moses, and all the prophets, who were strangers
and pilgrims on the earth, and sought a country, a city that
had foundations, whose builder and maker was God; and
experienced tribulation and affliction, stripes and
imprisonments; of whom the world was not worthy. Heb. 11, And
Christ Jesus Himself had not so much in the world as upon which
to lay His blessed head, for He says, "The foxes have holes, and
the birds of the air have nests; but the Son of man hath not
where to lay his head." Matt. 8:20. But He had to flee away
everywhere (Matt. 2:13), even</p>

</div><div id="852"> 

<br /><sub>rescan</sub> 

</div><div id="853"> 

<p>also, with much sighing and mourning, traveled through the
wilderness of this world, compassed about with an evil flesh,
which has never yet advised me to anything good: yea, if I had
not fled for refuge to the word of the Lord, I would have been
utterly overthrown in the wilderness of this world, for flesh
and blood greatly desired to be one with the world, since they
always shrank from suffering. But when I with David went into
the sanctuary of God, and there beheld the recompense of the
world, and how soon they are cut off, and that they were blots,
and not children; and also remembered that it is
written, "Cursed be the man that trusteth in man, and maketh
flesh his arm; yea, cursed be their going out and coming.in."
Ps. 73: 17; Deut. 32:5; Jer. 17:5; Deut. 28:19. However fine a
captain one may choose, to prosper in the world, flesh and
blood are nevertheless the ultimate object herein; for
experience has taught me this; nor am I surprised at it, since
men are now of no other material, than were the children of
Israel. How often did the Lord sigh over them, and what great
trouble did He have with them? Hence we may daily take good
heed, and be up and doing, that no one may take our crown.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear brethren and sisters, be not troubled,
that Fra. Ha. Jo. Ta. have gone back to Egypt, which does not
surprise me. But let it be an example unto you, that they were
overthrown in the wilderness of this world (I Cor. 10:5); and
do you take better courage (as I trust you will), and
constantly keep before your eyes the pious that were before us;
for he that flees opt of the conflict, does not get the crown,
for there is but one victory comprised in the Scriptures by
which we are to be crowned. I Cor. 9:25; II Tim. 2:5; Rev.
2:10.</p>

<p>O dear brethren and sisters, we now look through quite
different eyes as to what salvation depends on than when we
were out of bonds; for out of bonds I never could pray to God
as I now sometimes do.</p>

<p>Further, my dear brother, I commend to you my wife, whom I
love from the heart; desiring and requesting of you, that you
will exercise Christian care over her, the more so, since she
desires to remain a widow; for the holy Scripture commands us
to visit the widows and orphans in' their affliction. James
1:27. Hence, be the more diligent to aid her in everything
wherein she may need your counsel, in order to gain a
livelihood for herself and my children; so that she may not
become despondent.</p>

<p>O my dear brethren, this I exhort you with tears, for if the
Lord had not taken me from them, J could have provided for them
myself according to my weakness; but now the Lord has ordered
it otherwise with me, since He knows best what we need, and
what is for our best. Hence, I will also leave them for the
Lord's sake; for, dear brother R., my wife has been with me,
and we ate together a parting meal, and thus took final adieu
from each other. Think for yourself, how bitter a parting it
was, for I know that she also loves me from the heart.Hence, if
the Almighty Lord did not give strength and power, it would not
be possible to endure and overcome it; but through Him we can
do all things. Phil. 4:13. Hence, I commit my cause now as
before to the Lord, declaring that it is not on account of any
crime, heaven and earth bear me witness herein, and God, who
searches heart and reins, also knows very well my object in
this matter.</p>

<p>Furthermore, dear W., if it were possible, and you should be
in the city, I should from the heart like to converse orally
with you, which (as it seems to me) could very easily be done,
by giving a piece of money. But as you live so far away, I fear
it cannot well be done since it is so inconvenient for you; and
in such case I hope to be patient herein; for we neither know
nor hear when we are to die, nor have any priests assailed as
yet; but a secular man came to see us once and assailed us.
Neither have we been spoken to by the authorities, since we
were tortured the first time; for as we hear, the margrave has
had a sore leg. Thus we do not know if we shall be tortured any
more or not. They would indeed like to find out much from us,
but I hope that the Most High will keep our lips; for though
one were to tell them something, they are not satisfied with
that, but want to know more and more.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear brother and sister in the Lord, we pray you,
and all them that inquire after us, to remember them that are
in bonds, as bound with them; and them which suffer adversity,
as being yourselves also in the body. Heb. 13:3. And pray the
Lord heartily for us; we will also pray for you. Lauwerens, my
fellow prisoner, and I, greet you all with the peace of the
Lord, together with all our acquaintances in the Lord that are
over there from here. Let all of you remain like minded, and
the God of peace will be with you; and let there be no strife
among you. Rom. 12:16, 15:5. Remember me, my dear brother and
sister; I hope to wait you under the altar, where all tears
shall be wiped away from our eyes. Herewith I will commend you
to the crucified Christ Jesus; may He strengthen our hearts and
minds, and direct them into all that is acceptable before Him.
Herewith I bid you adieu. Adieu, my beloved brother and
sister.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER LETTER OF JOOST VERKINDERT, WRIT<br />
TEN ON THE 2ND OF JULY, FROM<br />
PRISON, TO HIS WIFE</h2> 

<p>Grace, joy and peace from God the Father, and our Lord Jesus
Christ; together with the Comforter, the Holy Ghost, who
proceeds from both the Father, and the Son, to comfort all them
that are in any tribulation and affliction; may He be
multiplied in you, to whom be praise, honor, glory, dominion,
power, and majesty, forever and ever. Amen. This I wish you as
a cordial and friendly greeting, my dear, beloved wife and
sister in the Lord, whom, with my children, I love from the</p>

</div><div id="854"> 

<p>depth of my heart, whose absence is to me such a great
affliction in my bonds, that I many and many a time call upon
the Lord with .weeping eyes, to take from me that which is too
heavy for me. But I remember the words of the apostle, where he
says, "Let my grace be sufficient for thee; I shall not leave
thee, nor suffer thee to be tempted above that thou art able."
II Cor. 12:9; I Cor. 10:13. For I know, that as long as man is
in this life, he cannot be without conflict. Job 7:1.</p>

<p>Further, my beloved, I have heard that we may probably soon
offer up our sacrifice; but we know not the time. Hence, I very
often pray the Lord with tears, to take from me the snare of
death, in order that I may offer up my soul with joy to the
Lord. And I hope through the great and unspeakable grace of
God, that my soul shall be received in safe hands, not through
my merits, but out of grace and because of the hope, that
Christ with His faithful mouth says, "Whosoever shall lose his
life for my sake or the gospel's the same shall find it
hereafter." Mark 8:35; Matt. 10:39. And, "Whosoever shall
confess me before men, him will I confess also before my
heavenly Father, and before his holy angels; but whosoever
shall deny me before men, him will I also deny in the glory of
my heavenly Father." Matt. 10:32, 33. Thus, my most beloved,
there is no better advice for us than to cleave to the truth,
so that we may hereafter receive the eternal crown from the
hand of the Lord. Know, furthermore, that I am much surprised
that my brother W. does not write a letter: for if he, or any
one else should desire to write-'us something, you could easily
send it to us, as you also do; for it can be done quietly. I
also hear that mother is in H., with whom we would so gladly
have spoken once more, since it is very easy to come to us
here, if one will not begrudge the money. For though the lord
does not come into the prison, he does not trouble himself with
anything but simply that for which he comes. Furthermore, my
beloved, J. de B. told me that he had been with you, and that
you wept much on my account; wherefore, when I heard this, I
was also filled with much sorrow. But, my chosen, comfort
yourself in the Lord, and let us commit the matter to Him, and
pray for those who afflict us with this; for,"Vengeance is
mine, I will repay, saith the Lord." Rom. 12:19. O my beloved,
I feel indeed, that as long as I live I must bear you in my
heart, but nevertheless, God above all; for God is a jealous
God (Ex. 20:2), and I also give Him the praise for the kindness
which He has shown me poor, weak servant, and still daily shows
me.</p>

<p>Herewith I will commend you to the crucified Christ Jesus,
and to the Word of His grace. Lauwerens, my fellow prisoner,
and I, greet you and all our acquaintances in the Lord very
much with the peace of the Lord. Write to me occasionally, for
a letter from you is more pleasing to me than gold and silver.
If time should overtake us, I bidyou' adieu. Adieu, my beloved,
and always persevere steadfastly. Written in my bonds, by
me,</p>

<p class="c5">JOOST VERKINDERT,</p>

<p class="c5">Your dear husband.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER LETTER OF JOOST VERKINDERT, WRIT<br />
TEN FROM PRISON, <i>ON</i> THE 12TH OF<br />
JULY, TO HIS:, MOTHER</h2> 

<p>Grace, joy and peace from God the heavenly Father, and our
Lord Jesus Christ, who loved us, and washed us from our sins in
His own blood, together with the Comforter, the Holy Ghost, who
proceeds from both the Father and the Son, to comfort all them
that are in any tribulation and affliction for His holy name's
sake; may He be multiplied in you; unto whom be praise, honor,
glory, dominion, power, and majesty, forever and ever. Amen.
This and all divine virtues, I wish you as a cordial and
friendly greeting, my dear and beloved mother and sister in the
Lord. I inform you by this that I am still tolerably well
according to the time, and I trust that you are well, too. My
mind also is still fixed to adhere to the eternal truth, and
not to forsake the same, whether it mean life or death; for
Peter says that there is none other name under heaven, given to
men, whereby to be saved, than only through the name of Jesus
Christ. Acts 4:12; 10:43. Therefore, my dear mother, it is
necessary that we constantly, according to our weak ability,
seek to follow the footsteps of Jesus Christ; for John
says, "Whosoever transgresseth, and abideth not in the doctrine
of Christ, hath not God. He that abideth in the doctrine of
Christ, hath both the Father and the Son." II .John 9.</p>

<p>Hence, my beloved, let us take heed that we may always be
found to be of the little flock (Luke 12:32), that our sheaf
may be gathered with all the elect saints of God into one barn
for there is a great storm at hand. Oh, that we were all worthy
of the Lord; then we should indeed have been born at a blessed
hour! Oh, I pray the Lord most heartily for you, to keep you in
His holy truth; so that we may hereafter be crowned with praise
and honor. O my beloved, the bringing forth is so grievous to
me; truly indeed does Christ say, "In the world ye shall have
tribulation: but be of good cheer; I have overcome the world."
John 16:33. And also, further, "Ye shall weep and lament, but
the world shall rejoice; and ye shall be sorrowful, but your
sorrow shall be turned into joy. A woman when she is in travail
hath sorrow, because her hour is come: but as soon as she is
delivered of the child, she remembereth no more the anguish,
for joy that a man is born into the world." vs. 20, 21. We have
now also much sorrow, and the world is glad and joyful, and
they do not once think how lamentably they are under the wrath
of God, as long as they do not become converted, and show true
repentance before the Lord. How applicable are the words of
Isaiah, "Hell hath opened wide her mouth, that</p>

</div><div id="855"> 

<p>there may go in both their princes and the common people:
yea, they go to hell like sheep to the slaughter." Isa. 5:14.
May the complaint ascend to the Lord of heaven, that the false
prophets so lamentably seduce the poor blind people (Ezek.
13:10), and, what is still more, so miserably oppress,
persecute, rob, and make a prey for every one, those who seek
to amend their lives. Truly indeed does Isaiah say, "Holy and
pious men are taken away, but no man layeth it to heart." Isa.
57:1. Hence, my beloved, let us not fear men, who must perish
like grass; for the moth shall eat them up like a garment, and
the worm shall eat them like wool. 51:2, 8. O clear mother,
they forbid the reading of the holy Scriptures, while Christ
says and exhorts us, "Search the Scriptures; for in them ye
think ye have eternal life: and they are they that testify of
me." John 5:39. For Paul also says, "Whatsoever things were
written beforetime were written for our learning." Rom. 15:4.
Oh, how hard will it go with those who so little esteem the
Scriptures; they are those that call good evil, and evil good.
Isa. 5:20. Oh, that they might once consider, how grievously
they have incurred the wrath of God. I pray the Lord most
heartily, to open the eyes of their understanding, that they
may see against whom they are fighting, that it is against God
and the Lamb; but the Lamb shall overcome them. Rev. 17:14. For
Isaiah says, "Though a mother should forget her child, and
forsake the son of her womb, whom she brought forth herself,
yet will I not forsake thee." Isa. 49:15. Yea, the Lord further
says through Zechariah, "He that toucheth you toucheth the apple
of mine eye." Zech. 2:8. And again, Isaiah says, "Fear not, O
Jacob; when thou walkest through the fire, I will preserve
thee; and when thou art in the water, it shall not harm thee:
for I the Lord will keep thee." Isa. 43:1, 2. My beloved, His
hand is not yet shortened; He is still the same God that
delivered Israel out of the land of Egypt, and out of the hand
of Pharaoh: who made the Red Sea a way so that the ransomed of
the Lord passed over. He is also still the same God that fed
them for forty years with bread from heaven, as is written, "He
fed them with bread from heaven, and with angel's food." Psalm
78:25. He is also the same God that preserved Shadrach,
Meshach, and Abednego in the fiery furnace, and delivered
Daniel out of the den of lions,and many other holy fathers,
concerning which an abundance is written in the Scriptures.</p>

<p>Therefore, my affectionately beloved sister in the Lord, my
heart felt prompted once more to exhort you a little with the
Word of the Lord, though you are yourself abundantly taught of
Him; for Paul says, "Exhort one another [daily,] while it is
called today" (Heb. 3:13), for the Lord cometh as a thief in
the night, as you may well perceive in our case.</p>

<p>Further, dear mother, I thank you for the affectionate love
which you have shown me at all times;yea, even before I
obtained your dear daughter to wife you were always kind to me.
I also thank you for the good intercourse which we have always
had together in peace (the Lord be praised); for I have often
rejoiced my soul with you. And now, my beloved, I commend to
you my dear wife and her two little orphans, desiring that you
will help exercise a Christian care over them, and do not spare
the rod on the children. Associate with R. as much as is
possible for you, lest she becomes despondent; for I know that
I am dear to her heart, and that she will therefore sorrow for
a long time. But exhort her to be patient in her tribulation;
for every dispensation of God toward us I hope will turn to the
salvation of us all; for the Lord knows what we need. My
beloved, receive this brief exhortation in good part as a
testament, since it is written with a humble heart and mind.
Herewith I will commend you to the crucified, bleeding Christ
Jesus, and to the Word of His rich grace. Amen. Adieu, my dear
mother, until another time, if we should here see each other no
more. Lauwerens, my fellow prisoner, and I, greet you and our
acquaintances in the Lord most cordially with the peace of the
Lord.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER LETTER OF JOOST VERKINDERT, WRIT<br />
TEN FROM PRISON, TO HIS WIFE, ON<br />
THE 23D OF JULY</h2> 

<p>Grace, joy and peace from God the heavenly Father, and our
dear Lord Jesus Christ, Who loved us and washed us from our
sins in His own blood; together with the consolation and
communion of the Holy Ghost; this I wish to be constantly
multiplied in you, as a friendly greeting, my beloved wife and
sister in the Lord, informing you that I am still tolerably
well according to the flesh; and as regards the spirit, my mind
is still fixed to adhere to the eternal truth by the help of
the Most High, from whom we must expect comfort; for of
ourselves we have not one good thought, but much rather an
aversion; for the flesh loves life, since it is of the earth,
and seeks nothing but what is earthly. But I hope in the
goodness and langsuffering of God, that He will not forsake me,
but will keep me, according to His promise, as the apple of His
eye. My beloved, we are now put to a very severe test; for at
no previous time was there before us such an opportunity of
being released as there is now. For there are some that got
out, who would have been put to death three weeks ago; but as
one of them was confined to his bed by sickness, their day of
execution was postponed, and in the meantime the pardon helped
them out. This pardon is also held out to us as seductively as
possible; they promise to restore to us that of which we have
been despoiled, and, to set us free, provided we should
renounce our second baptism, which we have refused, preferring
rather with old Eleazar, to die honorably, than to live with
ienominv (II Macc.</p>

</div><div id="856"> 

<p>6:19): praying the almighty Father through Jesus Christ, to
keep us in this purpose, .and to preserve us from evil. I also
cannot keep from you what happened to me. On Friday last, about
evening, I was taken down alone, to speak with one of the
bishop's underlings, whom I saluted, and bade him good
evening.. He did the same to me, saying, "Good evening, Joos." I remained standing with my head
uncovered, and he also took off his cap, and made a long
speech, and,began greatly to praise the name of God, since He
left His saints the promise to abide with His church unto the
end. Thereupon I asked him, whether the,apostles had put the
church in the form and ordinances in which it now stood.</p>

<p>He replied, "Yes, that is as regards the faith; and as
touching the ordinances, these the holy teachers instituted
through counsels and decrees, on account of certain causes that
arose, even as it also happened during the times of the
apostles: that all the elders came together, because contention
arose in the church." Acts 15:6. Then I said to him, that the
Lord had commanded the children of Israel very strictly neither
to take from nor add to the law; and how severely Saul was
punished by the Lord, because he, following his own mind, had
spared the king of the Amalekites, and the best oxen and sheep,
contrary to the command of God. Deut. 4:2; 12:32; I Sam. 15.
Thereupon he said, "The Lord had commanded him, to kill them all, and not to
spare them, and for this reason he was punished; but we neither
take from nor add. to the faith." I returned that they were
nothing but human plants. And Christ says, "Every plant which my
heavenly Father hath not planted shall be rooted up. Let them
alone: they be blind leaders of the blind. And if the blind
lead the blind, both shall fall into the ditch." Matt. 15:13.
Then he said, that plants were not doctrines; but they are
trees, said he, which are called men. I rejoined, that Christ,
Matt. 15, did not speak of trees. He said, "Yes." I said, "No;"
so that he finally said, "I will let you have it. - He then
asked me, where I ,'bad learned the Scriptures, or by whom I
had been instructed. I replied that I had taken my foundation
from the Scriptures, as Christ teaches us, saying, "Search the
Scriptures; for in them ye think ye have eternal life: and they
are they which testify of me" (John 5:39). Hence, I searched,
and asked the Lord for a right understanding and wisdom. Then
he said, "Oh, we must be instructed." I said, "We had also
teachers." He asked of whom our teachers had received
understanding. I asked him in return where the prophets and
apostles had received understanding. He answered, saying, "We are the ancient church, from the time of Christ to the
apostles, who first instituted the holy church, and established
it with many signs and miracles; and from the apostles to
Timothy and Titus, and to all the holy teachers, and thence to
all the holy popes and doctors even to the present day." And we
had many other words, concerningbaptism, which it would take
too long to relate; but rye could not agree.</p>

<p>Finally, in parting, he showed me great friendliness,
saying, "Dear Joos, you err, .and do not understand the
Scriptures." I said, "My lord, even as, you think that I err; so
I think that you err." He said, "Ask the Lord for
understanding." I replied, that I did so. Guilliame, the
thiefcatcher, was present throughout the whole conversation,
and they were both very deeply moves! on my account, as I well
perceived; and he spoke much of the great pardon which had come
from King Philip and .the pope together. In parting, I asked
him, whether any one might be put to death on account of the
faith. He answered, saying, "What else is the magistracy for?" I
said, "For the protection of the good, and the punishment of the
evil" (Rom. 13:3). He rejoined, "Peter killed Ananias and
Sapphira" (Acts 5:5, 9), and with this some persons came in, so
that this remark received no reply.</p>

<p>Herewith I commend you to the Lord, and to the Word of His
grace. Greet W. B. and all his acquaintances in the Lord, in my
name, with the peace of the Lord. Lauwerens, my fellow
prisoner, also greets you with the peace of the Lord.</p>

<br />

<h1>ANOTHER LETTER OF JOOST VERKINDERT, WRITTEN FROM PRISON, ON THE 10TH OF AUGUST, TO HIS BROTHER W. AND I. HIS WIFE</h1> 

<p>Grace, joy and peace from God the heavenly Father, and our
dear Lord Jesus Christ, who loved us, and washed us from our
sins in His own blood; together with the Comforter, the Holy
Ghost, who proceeds from both the Father and the Son, to
comfort all them that are in tribulation and sorrow for His
holy name's sake. To Him be praise, honor, glory, dominion,
power, and majesty, forever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>This, and other divine virtues I wish you as a friendly
greeting, my dear beloved brother W., and your dear wife I.;
informing you, that I am still tolerably well according to the
time, for which reason I thank and praise the Lord for His
great grace which He shows me, poor, weak and feeble servant;
trusting that also you are well. Know further, that I learned
in my bonds, that Fra. sent- word to Jo. Ca., that he should
look to his advantage; and that they would do likewise. Having
received this message, Jo. immediately fell sick, insomuch that
he was paralyzed in one side, and also lost his mind, so that
he took in and received the idol, and, consequently, received
the extreme unction, as a good son of the Romish church. and
died the 9th of August, for a perpetual warning to us and all
the God-fearing. Oh! my soul was very sad when I heard it. It
is just as Christ says, "Whosoever shall seek to save his life shall lose it." Luke
17:33. Hence, dear brother and sister. let us take diligent
heed, that we have not received the grace of God in vain; for
now is the accepted time,</p>

</div><div id="857"> 

<p>now is the day of salvation. Let us therefore not give
offense to .any one, but in all things approve ourselves as the
ministers of God. II Cor. 6:1. Let everyone strive to excel in
good works; for whatsoever good a man has done, the same shall
he receive twofold from the Lord. Hence let us always take heed
to and follow the words of Christ, where He says, "Fear not them
that kill the body; but rather fear him, which after he hath
killed hath power also to cast soul and body into hell." Luke
12:4, 5. Let us stand in awe of and fear Him, I say; for before
Him ungodliness cannot stand. But few there are that lay it to
heart, even as it has also been from the beginning, as in the
time of Noah, when there were but eight righteous persons.
Again, in the time of Sodom, when there were only three who
could stand before the Lord. Likewise the children of Israel,
who were God's peculiar people; the Lord did not spare them,
but destroyed them in the wilderness, so that of six hundred
thousand only two entered into the promised land, namely Joshua
and Caleb. O my dear brother and sister, how many there are
falling also in the wilderness of this world, though they were
also delivered by the Red Sea, namely, by the blood of Christ.
And this need not surprise us, since the Scriptures testify,
that the present world was created for many men, but the future
for few. For it is indeed just as the angel showed Esdras,
namely, a city builded upon a broad field, full of all good
things; the entrance thereof was narrow and steep, as if there
were a fire on the right hand, and on the left a deep water, so
that there was only one narrow path between them both, so small
that but one man could go there at once; which city no man
could or might receive for an inheritance, except he first pass
that strait. II Esd. 7:6-9. O my brother, now we are on the
narrow way, which is strait indeed, which no one knows better
than he that is tried therein; for we are now under the test;
the almighty God grant us His grace, that we may not be found
to be hay, straw and stubble, but gold, silver and precious
stones. I Cor. 3:12. O my dear friends, the flesh is indeed
afraid; but when we consider and meditate on the beautiful
promises which are promised to them that overcome and remain
steadfast, they sweeten every pain; for now no chastening for
the present, says Paul, seemeth to be joyous, but grievous:
nevertheless, afterward it yieldeth the peaceable fruit of
righteousness unto them which are exercised thereby. Heb.
12:11.</p>

<p>Thus we must also rapidly bring our days of sorrow to an
end; for we are sometimes as one that is in the throes of
travail, and there are so many grievous woes come upon us, that
we would almost seem to perish. Isa. 26:17. Hence pray the Lord
for us poor, weak prisoners; we do the same also for you and
all the God-fearing. Herewith I will commend you to the
crucified Christ Jesus, and to the Word of His grace, bidding
herewith adieu to my dear brethren and sisters. Greet in my
name, with thepeace of the Lord, all my acquaintances, and also
those not known by sight, but known before the Lord; and always
remember them that are in bonds, as bound with them. And always
persevere steadfastly, so that we may find one another under
the altar. Amen.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER LETTER OF JOOST VERKINDERT, WRIT<br />
TEN TO HIS DEAR WIFE, AND, GENERALLY, TO<br />
ALL BRETHREN AND SISTERS IN THE LORD;<br />
IN WHICH AN ACCOUNT IS GIVEN OF SEV<br />
ERAL DISPUTATIONS HELD WITH THE<br />
BISHOP'S COMMISSARY CONCERNING<br />
THE FAITH</h2> 

<p>Grace, joy and peace from God the heavenly Father, and our
Lord Jesus Christ, who loved us, and washed us from our sins in
His own1blood, and hath shined in our hearts, and translated us
into the kingdom of His dear Son; together with the Comforter,
the Holy Ghost, who proceeds from both the Father and the Son,
to comfort all them that are in tribulation and sorrow. To Him
be praise, honor, glory, dominion, power, and majesty, forever
and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>This I wish you as a friendly greeting, my dear and beloved
wife and sister in the Lord, together with all fellow believers
of our most holy faith; informing you, that our mind is still
fixed, to adhere to the eternal truth, and to the faith once
delivered to the saints, trusting thereby to obtain eternal
life, not through our own merits, but through pure grace, and
also because of the hope, that Christ with His faithful mouth
says, "Whosoever loseth his life for my sake and the Gospel's
the same shall find it hereafter in life eternal." Matt. 10:39;
Luke 17:33; John 12:25.</p>

<p>O my dear brethren and sisters, let everyone follow the
advice of Christ, and search the Holy Scriptures; for they are
they which testify of Him. John 5:39. And Paul says, "Whatsoever
things were written aforetime were written for our learning."
Rom. 15:4. And let us not fear men, which must perish like
grass; but let us fear Him which, after He hath killed, hath
power also to cast soul and body into hell; fear Him. Isa.
51:12; Luke 12:5. For heaven and earth shall pass away, but His
Word shall abide forever. Matt. 5:18.</p>

<p>Know further, that on the 17th of August we were both called
down to speak with the bishop's commissary; and having come
down we courteously greeted him, and bade him good evening. He
did likewise, asking, "loos, to what conclusion have you come?"
I replied, "I pray the Lord night and day for my greatest
salvation, and the more I pray, the greater my assurance
becomes that I have the truth." He said that it was true I was
seeking my salvation, but ignorantly, like the Jews, who wanted
to be justified through the law. And, with folded hands, he
made a long speech and highly extolled and thanked the name of
God, and of Jesus Christ, that He had done all things so well,
and had given</p>

</div><div id="858"> 

<p>the holy church so many good ordinances, and promised to
abide with it even unto the end of the world. Then Lauwerens
asked, where his church suffered persecution. He answered, "That
was seen three years ago, when some of our people were killed
by the Protestants." I said, "My lord, if the authorities did
not protect your church with the sword, it would soon come to
nought, for it has no strength." He said, that it was of God,
and had continued from the time of the apostles to Timothy and
Titus, and thence to all the holy teachers even to the present
day. I asked, whether the apostles had so observed or
instituted them [the ordinances] as they were now used by
them."Yes," said he,"as regards the faith." I said, that they
were far from the right way; for I had previously shown him,
that their ordinances were but commandments of men; and Christ
says, "Every plant which my heavenly Father hath not planted,
shall be rooted up. [Let them alone:] they be blind leaders of
the blind. And if the blind lead the blind, both shall fall
into the ditch." Matt. 15:13, 14. I showed him, that Israel was
forbidden to follow their own opinions, but were to observe
only what the Lord had commanded; and I told him how severely
Saul was punished by the Lord, because he, following his own
mind, had spared the king of the Amalekites, and the best of
the oxen and sheep. He answered, that Saul did this contrary to
the command of the Lord, but they did not; for it was all
instituted on account of certain causes that had arisen in the
church: even as in the time of the apostles; when there were
some that contended, a council was held. Also, that Paul
commanded Titus, to set in order the things which he had left
uncompleted (Tit. 1:5); and other words. Thereupon I told him
of the pious king Josiah</p>

<p>that he did not regard the ancient customs and ceremonies of
his forefathers, but that he destroyed all that had been
instituted contrary to the law, and commanded the law to be
observed aright. II Kings 23. To this he had but little to say.
I also asked him, saying, "My lord, I am much surprised, that
you do not banish us, as they do in Germany the Eastern
country,* and England." He said, "Whither would you go? for
whithersoever you go there you corrupt and seduce the people."
I told him, that faith was the gift of God, and also, that not
all men had it. Eph. 2:8. He said, "You did have the faith, but now you have adopted another;
and he added a simile: that we were like soldiers that had run
away from their lord without a passport, who were nowhere f
ree. I asked him, whether infant baptism was a taking in into
his church. He said, "Yes." I asked again, why they did not go
to Turkey to take in children. He answered, "Nay, this does not
belong to them, for they are a rejected people. I further asked
him, by what scriptures they might put us to death; which he
assayed to show with the law; but I said, that we were under
the law of grace, namely, under the</p>

<p class="c8">* Probably Austria, or the country bordering on
the Baltic.-Tr.</p>
<p>Gospel; and Christ says of the tares, that they
should be suffered to grow up with the wheat until the harvest.
Matt. 13:30."He said we have other scriptures, that the
magistracy has not received the sword in vain" (Rom. 13:4). I
showed him, that the sword was given to the magistracy for the
punishment of the evil, and the protection of the good;
moreover [I said] I have not been disobedient to the
magistracy, but have obeyed it in all according to the power
<i>which it</i> has received from God. And when I had asked
him, whether he had no other scriptures, he said, "Peter slew
Ananias and Sapphira." I said, "With what, and why?" He
replied, "Because they lied.""That is true," I said;"for they
lied to the Holy Ghost, and had kept back and said nothing
about part of the price of the land which they had sold." He
said, "Nevertheless; he slew them with the sword of his mouth."
And <i>though I</i> told him it was done for evil doing, and
without the sword, it was of no avail, he would therewith prove
his point that we might be put to death, and also added the
words of Paul, "I would they were even cut off which trouble
you." Gal. 5:12. I replied, that Paul did not mean such cutting
off as they were now doing. He said, "Paul then did not yet have
the magistracy on his side."</p>

<p>We then also spoke of infant baptism, which he would prove
to be a command of Christ, namely, because Christ says, "Except
a man be born of water and of the Spirit, he cannot enter into
the kingdom of God." John 3:5. In this passage he would also
include the children, namely, in the expression, a man.* I then
made him read that chapter, in a Bible which was there,
namely, "There was a man of the Pharisees, named Nicodemus, a ruler
of the Jews: the same came to Jesus by night, and said unto
him, Rabbi, we know that thou art a teacher come from God: for
no man can do these miracles that thou doest, except God be
with him. Jesus answered and said unto him, Verily, verily, I
say unto thee, Except a man be born from above, he cannot see
the kingdom of God." I then asked him, whether he knew and
understood what it was to be born from above; and also said,
that a child could not be born from above; but that Christ
thereby meant persons that had understanding."Yes," said
he,"and infants too," and fell back on his old proposition, and
held fast to it, namely, "Except a man be born of water and of
the Spirit," etc. And he also quoted Paul and Titus, that
Christ cleansed His church with the washing of water by the
Word. Eph. 5:26. Thereupon I answered that Paul thereby did not
mean children. He would also establish it with John's epistle,
namely, that there are three witnesses in heaven: the Father,
the Word, and the Holy Ghost</p>

<p>and these three are one; and three witnesses on earth: the
spirit, the water,:and the blood: and these three are one (I
John 5:7, 8); to which he added, that infants must be cleansed
from original sin</p>

<p class="c8">* Any one. Dutch version</p>

</div><div id="859"> 

<p>through baptism. I told him, that infants are cleansed from
their original sin through.the blood of our Lord Jesus Christ.
For Paul says, "Even as by the unrighteousness of one man death
entered into the world, so grace much more abounded by Christ
Jesus; and as in Adam all die, even so in Christ are all made
alive again." Rom. 5:17; I Corinthians 15:22. Also, that the
prophet says, that the child shall not bear the iniquity of its
father. Ezek. 18:20. He said, "It is true, this grace has come
upon all men: but that children must nevertheless be baptized,
if they were, to be saved;" and he made a great many words
which had a fair semblance. Then I asked him, whether infants
were saved by the water. He replied, "When they are baptized
with water, they receive the Holy Ghost, and are then redeemed
by the blood of Christ; which he established with the three
witnesses on earth, namely, the spirit, the water, and the
blood"; and upon this he strenuously insisted. I told him, that
he rejected and disesteemed with his infant baptism the blood
of Christ, with which he was not well satisfied. I then asked
him, whether baptism was not a burial of sin. He replied, "Yes."
I said, again, that infants had not committed sin, and that
they were simple and innocent. But it was all of no avail;
children must be baptized, for this had been practiced from the
time of the apostles. I asked him again, whether the apostles
had baptized children. He answered, that they had baptized
entire households, among which there might probably also have
been infants. I said, that the households had addicted
themselves to the ministry ( I Cor. 16:15), which children
could not do, but it is necessary to minister to them;
nevertheless he adhered to what he had said.- I asked him, if
there were a woman that had two infants, and one of them were
baptized, and the other died without baptism, what he held in
regard to this. He answered, "The baptized infant would be
saved, and the unbaptized one not." I said, that the blood of
Christ had more efficacy than their baptism, and that they also
baptized those to whom it did not belong; for Christ has
commanded to baptize believers, and not infants, and has also
commanded the baptized to keep His commandments. I also said
that they were dear with baptism, but that it had no efficacy.
He therefore made many words, for he wanted to establish infant
baptism also with circumcision. But I proved to him, that the
figure was not applicable thereto: also, that only the male
children, and not the female, were circumcised. But it was all
of no avail, it had to be a figure of baptism, and as the
uncircumcised soul had to be cut off from the people of Israel,
he said, so should also the unbaptized be damned; which I
contradicted him with divers Scriptures. He said, "Joos, it
seems to me, that you understand it better than you pretend;
for I have certainly proved to you plainly enough that infants
must be baptized." I answered him and said, "My lord, think not
that I would contradict you against my mind and un derstanding,
when I am in such severe confinement." And thus we had to be
poor and miserable men; and we had many other words together
regarding baptism; but we could not agree on this point. When
he had waited a little with speaking, he said, "Joos, you have
suffered yourself to be lamentably deceived." I told him, that
I had the truth, nor had I suffered myself to be deceived;
asking him, whether it was not his opinion, that we should f
rom this fire go into the eternal."Oh," said he,"that is beyond
a doubt.""I have a better hope," said I,"and should fain see
also you come to a better knowledge." When he heard this, he
ceased a little, as though -he were startled and terrified, and
he pitied us greatly, and I saw that he meant it from the
heart.</p>

<p>We further had some words concerning the incarnation of
Christ, who he said had assumed flesh and blood from Mary. I
told him, that he should prove it to me. He quoted Rom. 1:3,
that He was David's son according to the flesh. I said, "I
confess this too." He then quoted Paul to the Hebrews, where he
says, "He taketh not on angels, but he taketh on the seed of
Abraham." Hebrews 2:16. He also quoted Matt. 1, of the
generation. Thereupon I asked him, whether he did not believe
that the Word became flesh. He replied,"Yes, for Christ assumed
flesh and blood from Mary." I quoted to him Luke 1, that the
angel came to Mary, saluted her and said, that she should
conceive in her womb, and bring forth a son, who should be
called Jesus, and the Son of the Highest. Mary answered and
said to the angel, "How shall this be, seeing I know not a man?"
The angel answered and said to her, "The Holy Ghost shall come
upon thee, and the power of the Highest shall overshadow thee:
therefore also that holy thing which shall be born of thee
shall be called the Son of God." I added also Matt. 1, that the
angel appeared to Joseph in a dream, saying, "Joseph, thou son
of David, fear not to take unto thee Mary thy wife: for that
which is conceived in her is of the Holy Ghost." I also quoted
Paul, where he says, "The first man is of the earth, earthy; the second man is
the Lord from heaven." And that flesh and blood cannot inherit
the kingdom of God. I Corinthians 15:47, 50. But no matter what
I proved to him, he persisted that Christ must be of the nature
of Mary, so that after many other words which we had together,
concerning the incarnation of Christ, we could not agree. He
then took up the Supper, saying that it was true flesh and
blood, which he would establish with the words of Christ, where
Ire says, "Except ye eat the flesh of the Son of man, and drink
his blood, ye have no life in you. Whoso eateth my flesh, and
drinketh my blood, hath eternal life." John 6:53, 54. I replied
to him, that Christ did not speak these words with reference to
the Supper. He rejoined, "Is it not written: Take, eat; this is
my body?" (Matt. 26:26). I replied, that it signified His body:
for it is also written: I am the true vine (John 15:1)
though</p>

</div><div id="860"> 

<p>He was not a natural vine. Moreover, Paul states it clearly,
where he says, "I have received of the Lord that which also I
delivered unto you, That the Lord Jesus, the same night in
which he was betrayed, took bread, and when he had given
thanks, he brake it, and said, Take, eat, this is my body,
which is broken for you; this do in remembrance of me. After
the same manner also he took the cup, when he had supped,
saying, This cup is the new testament in my blood: this do ye,
as oft as you drink it, in remembrance of me. For as often as
ye eat this bread, and drink this cup, ye do shew the Lord's
death till he come," (Mark, till He come). I Corinthians
11:23-26. Hence, I said, He is not present there bodily, as you
say, my lord. I also told him of the paschal lamb, proving to
him, that it was a true figure of the Supper; but we could
agree in no point. The subject of monasteries was also brought
up all of which I called sects, and asked him, whether God's
children must not all be spiritual. He answered, "Yes." I asked
again, why they were not all of one kind since there were many
and various monasteries manifestly differing from one another
in caps and ceremonies. He answered and said that the Holy
Ghost wrought manifold gifts, with which He wanted to establish
the monasteries. I also asked him whether he had not read the
prophet Baruch."Very likely," he said. Then I told him, how the
prophet there warns Israel that when they should be in Babylon,
and should there see them bear idols upon their shoulders, and
much people running before and behind, they should think in
their hearts, "O Lord, thou alone art to be worshiped." Baruch 6:3. And I
asked him, whether the same ought not to be done on Sunday. He
answered and said, "That is to be only an image." I said, that
the image makers are cursed. Ex. 20:4; Deut. 27:15. He
said, "They are the books of the simple," and maintained, that
the images were like letters, and would also prove that images
might be made, and this with the cherubim that were on the ark.
We also had many words together concerning the worshiping of
the saints; but we could not agree. I have been before him
three different times. O dear brethren and sisters, let each
persevere steadfastly: and heartily entreat the Lord for us;
that we may be able to stand against all the gates of hell; for
our conflict is not little, for we are in the midst of our
enemies. Farewell all of you, and adieu till a better time.</p>

<p>Written in my bonds, by me,</p>

<p class="c5">JOOST VERKINDERT.</p>

<p class="c5">Unworthy prisoner in the Lord.</p>

<p class="c8">Blessed are the pure in heart: for they shall see
God. Matt. 5:8.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER LETTER OF JOOST VERKINDERT WRIT<br />
TEN IN BONDS TO HIS WIFE ON THE<br />
20TH OF AUGUST</h2> 

<p>The unspeakable grace of God the Father, the love of His
beloved Son our Lord Jesus Christ, together with the comfort,
joy and gladness of the Holy Ghost; this I wish you for a
cordial and friendly greeting, my very dear and beloved wife
and sister in the Lord. I inform you that I am still tolerably
well according to the time, for which reason I thank and praise
the Lord for His great grace, trusting to hear the same from
you.</p>

<p>Know further, that in the letters mentioning the
disputations with the priest not all the words are contained
which we had together, for he also quoted, "He which converteth
the sinner from the error of his way shall save a soul from
death" (Jas. 5:20); telling us, that if we would be converted,
we should be set free, and suffered to go where we pleased. He
spoke with an angelic mien frequently with folded hands, adding
virtually, that he would stand in our stead at the judgment of
God and that we had not the truth; so that it seems to me, that
if a man were not firmly built upon Christ, he would have to
perish. But the almighty God be praised and thanked, that all
his sharp arrows which he shot did not harm or injure me, for
God was with me. He also said, that not many rich followed
Christ, but many poor and plain people; but by the apostles
many signs and miracles were wrought, whereby, he said, the
rich, and also kings and princes came to the faith, and since
he is very profuse in words, he quoted many other fragmentary
passages of Scripture, and gives himself very plain. In short,
he made a fair display, but did not sell anything. If we
however, had sought the temporal life, he indeed represented it
to us in very fair colors; but the almighty God be praised and
thanked for His great grace, for my mind is still determined at
this day, rather to die honorably than to live ignominiously.
For there is none other name under heaven given to men whereby
we must be saved except only the name of Jesus Christ (Acts
4:12); for He alone is the way and entrance to life eternal. O
my beloved, this way has no bypaths, but those that depart from
it go to death. Flesh and blood would indeed live still longer,
but the spirit would rather be unfettered and present with
Christ (II Cor. 5:8); for as long as we live we are in many
dangers; for in a short time we may lose that for which we have
long labored.</p>

<p>Therefore, we may indeed constantly cry to God, to preserve
us poor pilgrims in this dismal wilderness, where serpents spew
fire, yea, where wolves run swiftly until evening to shed
innocent blood; but, my beloved, He that is with us is much
mightier than he that is with the world; for God is with us,
but with the world, an arm of flesh. Oh, that we might be found
one of those of whom John writes, saying, "These are they which
came out of great tribulation, and have washed their robes, and
made</p>

</div><div id="861"> 

<p>them white in the blood of the Lamb. Therefore are they
before the throne of God, and serve him day and night in his
temple: and he that sitteth on the throne shall dwell among
them. They shall hunger no more, neither thirst any more;
neither shall the sun light on them, nor any heat. For the Lamb
which is in the midst of the throne shall feed them, and shall
lead them unto living fountains of waters: and God shall wipe
away all tears from their eyes." Rev. 7:14-17. And also, "These
are they which were not defiled with women; for they are
virgins. These are they which follow the Lamb whithersoever he
goeth." And again, "These were redeemed from among men, being
the first fruits unto God and to the Lamb." 14:4. Also, "Because
thou hast kept the word of my patience, I also will keep thee
from the hour of temptation, which shall come upon all the
world, to try them that dwell upon the earth." 3:10.</p>

<p>O my beloved, if we were there, the journey would have been
safely accomplished. Nevertheless, I have a living hope; for
God does not desire our death. Hence, let us always be bold,
and comfort ourselves with the words of Christ, where He
says, "They shall put you out of the synagogues</p>

<p>yea, the time cometh, that whosoever killeth you will think
that he doeth God service. And these things will they do unto
you, because they have not known the Father, nor me." John
16:2, 3."For if they had known him, they would not have
crucified the Lord of glory." I Cor. 2:8. Let us take for an
example all the holy fathers, who met with all sorts of
tribulation and affliction, and proved themselves a sweet savor
of Christ in them that are saved, and in them that perish a
savor unto death. II Cor. 2:15, 16. For the Lord has appointed
a day in which He will render to every man according to his
works (Ps. 62:12); and it seems to me, that the day of the Lord
is at hand; hence let us possess our souls in patience, so that
we may be able to stand before Him in that day. Luke 21:19.</p>

<p>Herewith I will commend you, my beloved, to. the crucified,
bleeding Christ Jesus, and to the rich Word of His grace.
Lauwerens, my, fellow prisoner, and I, greet you and all our
acquaintances very cordially with the peace of the Lord. Do the
best with my little orphans. By me,</p>

<p class="c5">JOOST VERKINDERT.</p>

<p>Your dear husband, and unworthy prisoner in the Lord.
Written in my bonds, on the 20th of August.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER LETTER OF JOOST VERKINDERT, WRIT<br />
TEN IN HIS BONDS, TO HIS WIFE, ON THE 2D<br />
OF SEPTEMBER</h2> 

<p>The grace and peace of God the heavenly Father, the love of
His beloved Son, together with the comfort, joy, and gladness
of the Holy Ghost, this I wish you as a friendly greeting, my
very dear and beloved wife and sister in the Lord. Be pleased
toknow, that I am still tolerably well according to the time,
for which I thank and praise the Lord for His great goodness
and grace, trusting to hear the same from you. Know further,
that I received your letter, and thank you for your good
exhortation and Christian solicitude for me in these my bonds.
O my beloved, this indeed may truly be called the narrow way,
for we are assailed from every side, namely, from flesh and
blood; and Satan rests not day or night, by some means to bring
us into error or unbelief; for the enemies of the cross of
Christ approach us very subtilly. Now they have compassion for
us, saying, "I will be innocent. of your blood." Then they
say, "If you die in your belief, you must from this fire go into
the eternal. Thereupon I replied to him, that we had ,a better
hope, and were not as those that beat the air." I Cor. 9:26. He
said that we were possessed of the devil, and were so firmly
bound or held of him, that we would not let ourselves be moved.
We replied that the Jews also said to Christ, that He had a
devil. John 7:20; 10:20. I wonder, said he, if it would do some
good to exorcise you; and other blasphemous words. We told him
to go and seek souls, and to reprove harlots and rogues,
drunkards, and the ungodliness of the people, since to such the
kingdom of heaven is denied. He answered, that he exhorted them
to repentance. Lauwerens told him, that all their things and
ceremonies were nothing but hypocrisy and abomination, and that
they sold masses to the people by the dozen. He replied to
Lauwerens, saying, "If you were a wise man, I should take this
ill of you." I asked him, where there was anything written [in
the Bible] concerning his mass. He said it was a sacrifice, and
made many words with regard to this matter, so that it was
astonishing where he got it all; much of it had a fair
semblance. Among other things he said, that he would shed his
blood for us, to gain our souls. I told him, that he would
nevertheless be loth to die for us, and set us free. He said
that we were too pernicious to live. I said, "My lord, I am much
surprised (since you say, that if we die in this belief we are
damned) that you will not rather suffer us to live; for as long
as a man lives, he has time for amendment and repentance, " But
to this he had little inclination, saying, that we were of the
worst persuasion on the earth; for the Calvinists and
Martinists, he said, were more easily moved than we; so that we
could not agree, but he said, that he daily prayed for us. Oh,
said he, I remembered you this very day in my mass. We said,
that we also prayed the Lord day and night for our greatest
salvation. He said, that we sought salvation, but ignorantly.
He would also have the flesh and blood of Christ really present
in the bread or Supper. In regard to this we made but few
words, but I said to him, "Even as Israel made a golden calf,
which served as an idol, to whom they said, that these were
their gods which had delivered them out of Egypt; so it is also
with your people; for they say: 'This is our god which has
redeemed</p>

</div><div id="862"> 

<p>us on the tree of the cross."' He said, that if He were not
present in the bread, it would be idolatry; but when the priest
has pronounced the words over it He comes sacramentally into
it, and hence it is also not idolatry. And when he could not
move us with Scriptures, he held out to us release and pardon,
to lure us, so that my conflict thereby becomes the more
grievous to me; yet I hope that the Lord will help us to
triumph, for without the help of God it were impossible to
stand.</p>

<p>Hence, my beloved, help me heartily to entreat the Lord,
that He will preserve me through His great goodness and
longsuffering as the apple of His eye, that I may not be
seduced through philosophy or carnal liberty, nordepart from my
God, of which I have a great terror; but that He will comfort
and strengthen me in my good purpose, to the praise of His holy
name, and to the salvation of my soul.</p>

<p>Herewith I will commend you to the crucified, bleeding
Christ Jesus, and to the rich Word of His grace; who is
faithful in what He has promised. I greet you, my beloved, with
the kiss of peace; and Lauwerens and I also greet all our
acquaintances very cordially with the peace of the Lord.
Amen.</p>

<p>Written in my bonds, by me,</p>

<p class="c5">JOOST VERKINDERT,</p>

<p class="c5">Unworthy prisoner in the Lord.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER LETTER OF JOOST VERKINDERT, WRITTEN TO HIS BROTHERS, MICHIEL AND PLEUN,<br />
ON THE 7TH OF SEPTEMBER, THE 100TH<br />
DAY OF HIS IMPRISONMENT</h2> 

<p>May God the Father, and our dear Lord Jesus Christ, give you
a heart and mind, to walk in His holy truth all the days of
your life, to the salvation of your poor, naked souls, that
they may be saved, when the Lord shall visit them at the last
day, when we shall all be placed before the judgment seat of
Christ, where everyone shall receive reward according to his
deeds, whether they be good or bad. II Cor. 5:10. To God the
Father be praise and honor through Jesus Christ; may He give us
His Holy Spirit for a Comforter in all our tribulation, in
which we now are, for Christ and the Gospel's sake. To the Lord
be praise, honor and thanks forever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>This I wish you, my dear and beloved brothers, Michiel and
Pleun, as a heartfelt and friendly greeting, from the inmost of
my soul. Be pleased to know, that I am still tolerably well
according to the flesh; and as regards the spirit, my mind is
still fixed, to adhere to the eternal truth with the help of
the Most High, to whom I must look for comfort and help; for of
myself I have not one good thought but only aversion; for the
flesh always shrinks from suffering. Nevertheless, my dear
brothers, there must be suffering, either here or hereafter,
for Christ says that the kingdom of heaven suffereth violence,
and the violent must take it by force.Matt. 11:12. O dear
brothers, I pray you from the heart, that you will take heed to
yourselves, to obey the voice of the Lord, so that you may not
be found to be of those who had buried their talent in the
earth, and of those who want to put a new piece upon an old
garment, and of those who put new wine into old bottles. Matt.
25:18; Luke 5:36, 37. O my dear brothers, if you do not take
heed to yourselves, God will require a strict account of you,
for Christ says, "All those who will not have me to reign over
them, bring hither, and slay them before mine eyes, and cast
them into outer darkness; there shall be weeping and gnashing
of teeth." Luke 19:27; 13:25. And further, Luke 12:47, Christ
says, "That servant which knew his Lord's will, and prepared not
himself, neither did according to his will, shall be beaten
with many stripes.", O my dear brothers, accept this my warning
in good part, for it is done out of pure brotherly love, and
this because I so well know, that without Christ and without
His Word there is no salvation. For I also, for a number of
years knew better than I did, the Lord forgive me; and if I
could have served the world and the Lord, I would not be in
bonds. O dear brothers, flesh and blood did not bring me to
this, but the Word of the Lord, which is sharper than any
two-edged sword. For no man can serve two masters at the same
time; he must despise the one, and hold to the other. Ye cannot
serve God and mammon together. Matt. 6:24. And Oh, it (the
Word) also calls to the children of Israel and says, "How long
halt ye between two opinions? if the Lord be God, follow him;
if Baal, then follow him." I Kings 18:21. O dear brothers,
these and other Scriptures compelled me to renounce my own
will, in order to escape the great deluge and punishment that
shall come upon those who have not obeyed the Gospel of our
dear Lord Jesus Christ, who shall be punished with everlasting
destruction from the presence of the Lord, and from the glory
of His power. II Thess. 1:8, 9.</p>

<p>O dear brothers, be afraid of that day which shall burn as
an oven, and when all the proud despisers, and all the wicked
shall be as stubble; but they that have kept the laws of their
God shall then grow up as calves of the stall, and they shall
go in and out, and tread down the wicked like ashes under their
feet. Mal. 4:1. O dear brothers, that we might all be found
worthy to hear the pleasant voice of Christ saying, "Come, ye
blessed, inherit the kingdom of my Father, prepared for you
from the foundation of the world." Oh, then we should have
indeed been born at a blessed hour I For there are so few that
seek to follow the Lord with a whole and true heart, for
everyone would excuse himself; the one says: I have bought five
yoke of oxen; the second: I have married a wife; the third: I
have bought a piece of ground; I pray thee, have me excused.
Luke 14:18. O dear brothers, before the Lord no excuse shall be
able to stand; hence let us take heed, if we have heard His
voice, that our hearts do not become hardened or stony; for
we</p>

</div><div id="863"> 

<p>have many examples in the holy Scriptures, that the ungodly
cannot stand before the Lord. For we read, how God punished the
world with the deluge, because of their sins; but He saved
Noah, the eighth person, a preacher of righteousness, and
brought in the flood upon the world, of the ungodly; and
overthrew and condemned the cities of Sodom and Gomorrah for
their sins; but preserved just Lot with his two daughters, who
were vexed with their improper and unchaste conversation. II
Pet. 2:5. Thus, dear brothers, though the Lord does not
outwardly comfort* you, as, He then did, yet He shall not let
sin go unpunished, for the Lord is a righteous judge, who will
judge the heart and thoughts. Oh, yes, man shall have to give
account of every idle word that he has spoken. Matt. 12:36. O
dear beloved brothers, go out from this spiritual Egypt, from
the power of the hellish Pharaoh, and from this spiritual
Sodom, where they crucified our Lord, and from this spiritual
Babylon; so that you may live in Zion, and there behold the
beautiful worship of God; for I warn you in the name of the
Lord, and my conscience, that you will find it at the last day,
as I have here written you.</p>

<p>O dear brothers, Michiel and Pleun, I also admonish myself
hereby, for if I persevere not in this conflict, all that I
have suffered is in vain, for the unsaved shall be written in
the earth. Jer. 17:13. O so many times I feel a terror of
apostatizing, for I am so certain and assured that I am on the
right way. For, dear brothers, you well know, that no one can
come into this world except he be born; so no one can enter
into the future world, except he be born again, even as Peter
clearly testifies, not of corruptible seed, but of
incorruptible, by the Word of God, which liveth and abideth,
forever. I Peter 1:23. O brothers, dear brothers, happy is he
that is thus born: for such regenerated persons use the true
baptism and the true Supper; they also keep aloof from all
false doctrines, and also use the true excommunication and
separation, for the maintenance of the purity of the church, or
it would soon become a Babylon.</p>

<p>Dear brothers, I have been before a priest four different
times, and we can agree in nothing. Oh, he uses such diligence
to bring us to his church; and because we will not buy, or
cannot accept with a good conscience, his merchandise,
therefore he says that we have the devil in us, and that we are
damned if we thus die in our belief. However, I am not
terrified by his judgment, but I pray the Lord, to open the
eyes of their understanding, that they may see against whom
they are contending, that it is not against men, but against
God and the Lamb; for Christ says, "If ye were of the world, the
world would love his own; but because ye are not of the world,
[but I have chosen you out of the world], therefore the world
hateth you." John 15:19. And Christ further says, "If they have
called</p>

<p class="c8">* Perhaps a typographical error, and should read,
punish.-Tr.</p>
<p>the master of the house Beelzebub, how much more
shall they call them of his household." Matt. 10: 25. Oh, how
truly it may be said at this time, that our life is accounted
madness, our going out destruction and our honor shame. Wisd.
5:4; 3:3. Oh, how are the words of Christ fulfilled where He
says, "They shall put you out of the synagogues: yea, the time
cometh, that whosoever killeth you will think that he doeth God
service. And these things will they do unto you, because they
have not known the Father, nor me." John 16:2, 3. And also Paul
says, "If they had known him, they would not have crucified the
Lord of glory." I Cor. 2:8. O my dear brothers, remove your
feet from the paths of the ungodly, for they go to hell, like
sheep to the slaughter. Proverbs 4:14. And look not to the
multitude, for Esdras writes, "Even as there is found much earth
of which to make earthen vessels, but little to make golden
ones, so are the ungodly to the righteous." II Esd. 8:2. And
again"Like as a flood is to a drop, so are the ungodly to the
righteous." 9:16. And he further says, "What profit is it to man that there is promised a city full
of all good things, if he cannot enter into it? or that there
is promised an immortal life, whereas we do the works that
bring death?" Hence we may well say with Esdras, "O Adam, Adam!
what hast thou done I for when thou didst fall, thou didst not
fall alone, but also we all that come of thee." 7:48. O my dear
brothers, strive to become true sheep of Christ's flock, and
true branches of the vine Christ, and seek those things which
are above, where Christ sitteth on the right hand of God; set
your affections on things above not on things on the earth; and
mortify your members which are upon the earth; fornication,
uncleanness, inordinate affection, evil concupiscence, and
covetousness, which is idolatry; for which things' sake the
wrath of God cometh on the children of disobedience. Col. 3:l,
2, 5, 6. Thus, my dear brothers, if you desire the truth, and
to escape the punishment to come, seek to order your life
according to the Gospel, and deny yourselves; for Christ says
in the Gospel, "If any man will come after me, let him deny
himself, and take up his cross, and follow me. For whosoever
will save his life shall lose it, and whosoever will lose his
life for my sake and the Gospel's shall save it, For what is a
man profited, if he shall gain the whole world and lose his own
soul? or what shall a man give in exchange for his soul? But
whosoever shall be ashamed of me and of my words in this
adulterous and sinful generation, of him also shall the Son of
man be ashamed, when he cometh in the glory of his Father with
the holy angels." Matt. 16:24-26; Mark 8:38.</p>

<p>O my dear brothers, consider well these Scriptures, and
meditate on them, for Christ Jesus has brought them down here
from high heaven, and lived and taught them, and sealed them
with His blood, and became poor for our sakes, that through His
poverty He might make us rich. O consider</p>

</div><div id="864"> 

<p>once, how despised Christ was for our sakes. So that the
prophet Isaiah laments and says, that there was no beauty in
Him, which might have pleased us. Isa. 53:2. Yea, he [the
Psalmist] laments, that he was a worm, and no man. Ps. 22:6. O
dear brothers, let us take an example from Him, how admirably
He went before us; for all those who do not accept Christ are
not redeemed by Him; for Christ also says in the Gospel, "Why
call ye me, Lord, Lord, and do not the things which I say? for
whosoever heareth these sayings of mine, and doeth them, I will
liken him unto a wise man, which built his house upon a rock:
and the rain descended, and the floods came, and the winds
blew, and beat upon that house; and it fell not: for it was
founded upon a rock.* And every one that heareth these sayings
of mine, and doeth them not, shall be likened unto a foolish
man which built his house upon the sand</p>

<p>and the rain descended, and the floods .came, and the winds
blew, and beat upon that house, and it fell: and great was the
fall of it." Luke 6:46; Matthew 7:24-27. And Christ further
says, of the sower, Matt. 13, that some seed fell by the
wayside, some upon stony places, some among thorns, and some
into good ground, and this brought forth fruit. Oh, ponder well
this Scripture, in how many a one the deceitful riches suppress
the Word of God, so that it does not bring forth fruit. Thus,
my dear beloved brothers, this is written in my bonds for a
perpetual warning to you. Oh, that God would grant grace, that
His Word might lie in your heart, as it does in mine; then you
should soon bid the world farewell, Yet, my flesh sometimes
wonderfully shrinks back from suffering, so that at times I am
as fearful as one that is in the throes of travail.
Nevertheless, Christ Jesus also shrank from suffering. Luke
22.</p>

<p>Herewith I will commend you to the crucified Christ Jesus,
and to the abundant Word of His grace, as a perpetual adieu
upon earth if we should here see one another no more; for my
mind is still fixed this day, to seal this letter with my
blood, and, with old Eleazar, rather to die honorably than to
live stained with ignominy. And, Michiel, I also greet your
wife, sister Tanneken, very cordially with a perpetual adieu.
My brothers always do good, and praise and thank the Lard, that
you have a brother who is worthy to lay down his life for
Christ and the Gospel's sake. Written to you in tears, for
nature's sake. Assist Christian with the children, wherever it
is possible for you; and keep this letter as a testament. By
me, your dear brother,</p>

<p class="c5">JOOST VERKINDERT.</p>

<p class="c8">*"Corner-stone;" the original has it.</p>

<h2>THE LAST LETTER OF JOOST VERKINDERT, WRITTEN TO HIS WIFE AFTER HE HAD RECEIVED<br />
HIS SENTENCE, AND WAS BROUGHT TO THE<br />
COMMON PRISON, IT BEING ON THE<br />
12TH OF SEPTEMBER</h2> 

<p>God, who is the God of all comfort; who comforteth us in all
our tribulation, that we may be able to comfort them Which are
in any trouble, by the comfort wherewith we ourselves are
comforted of God through Christ Jesus, to Him be praise, honor,
glory, dominion, power, and majesty, forever and ever.
Amen.</p>

<p>This I wish you as a cordial and friendly greeting, my dear
and beloved wife and sister in the Lord, as a perpetual adieu
upon earth; informing you, that I am still tolerably well
according to the time, for which I thank and praise the
almighty Father, my and your God, that He has chosen me
hereto.</p>

<p>Hence, my most beloved, do not sorrow too much on my
account, but praise and thank the Lord, that you have had a
husband that is counted worthy to lay down his life for the
truth.</p>

<p>O my beloved, I pray and exhort you once more, that you will
keep yourself in quietness and in the fear of God, that we may
together receive the beautiful promises, where neither cold,
nor heat, nor hunger, nor thirst shall be any more, but such
joy, which eye hath not seen, nor ear heard, neither have
entered into the heart of man, the great joy and gladness which
God hath prepared for them that love Him. I Cor. 2:9.</p>

<p>O my beloved, this befell me, when we least expected it; but
the almighty God be praised and thanked through Christ Jesus,
that He still thus aids and succors me in my distress.</p>

<p>Herewith I commend you and my two little children to Christ
Jesus, whom I commend to you for a husband.</p>

<p>O my beloved, never forsake this husband and bridegroom, for
he is the Father of the widows and orphans. Ps. 68:6. Adieu, my
most beloved, with mother and all our friends, whom I commend
upon earth to the crucified, bleeding Christ Jesus. Adieu,
adieu all together. Subscribed by me,</p>

<p class="c5">JOOST VERKINDERT.</p>

<p class="c5">Your dear husband, written in my bonds.</p>

<br />

<h1>A LETTER FROM LAUWERENS ANDRIESS, THE FELLOW PRISONER OF JOOST VERKINDERT; SENT THE 9TH OF SEPTEMBER, TO R., THE WIFE OF SAID JOOST</h1> 

<p>The eternal, abundant and rich grace and mercy of God the
heavenly Father, and the pure love, joy and peace of the Son,
together with the comfort of the Holy Ghost, who proceeds from
both the Father and the Son, to comfort those that are in any
tribulation; this I wish you, my dear and God-beloved sister in
the Lord, as a friendly greeting, to strengthen you in your
great tribulation, in which</p>

</div><div id="865"> 

<p>you now also are for the Lord's holy name and the Gospel's
sake, which Gospel He left us, and sealed it with His precious
blood, that He might thereby cleanse and wash us from all our
uncleanness, and present us unto Himself holy and blameless,
without spot or wrinkle, yea, that He might thereby prepare
unto Himself a holy people zealous of good works. Eph. 5:26,
27; Tit. 2:14. To Him be praise, thanks, glory, honor, power,
and majesty, forever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>After all proper greetings, my dear and beloved sister in
the Lord, whom I love from the depth of my heart, because of
our regeneration, I inform you, that I and your dear husband
are still tolerably well according to the flesh; and as regards
the spirit, it is still the purpose of us both, to adhere to
the eternal truth by the great help of the Lord, without whom
we can do nothing, and from whom we must also constantly look
for help and comfort. And He, according to His promise, does
not suffer us to be tempted above that we are able, but does
with the temptation also make a way to escape. I Cor. 10:13.
Yea, He is a faithful helper in distress, who never yet forsook
His own that continued in His fear, and firmly trusted in His
Word; for He gives unto every one that asks Him, and will not
that any should perish, but that all should come to repentance,
that we should be to the praise of His glory. Matt. 7:7; II
Pet. 3:9; Eph. 1:12. Hence,"If ye then be risen with Christ,
seek those things which are above, where Christ sitteth on the
right hand of God. Set your affection on things above, not on
things on the earth; for ye are dead, and your life is hid with
Christ in God. When Christ, who is our life, shall appear, then
shall ye* also appear with him in glory. Mortify therefore your
members which-are upon the earth; fornication, uncleanness,
inordinate affection, evil concupiscence, and covetousness,
which is idolatry: for which things' sake the wrath of God
cometh on the children of disobedience." Cal. 3:1-6. Therefore,
let all bitterness, conceitedness, and wrath, and anger, and
clamor, and evil speaking, be put away from you, with all
malice: and be ye kind one to another, tenderhearted, forgiving
one another, even as God for Christ's sake hath forgiven you.
Be ye therefore followers of God, as dear children; and walk in
love, as Christ also hath loved us, and hath given himself for
us. Eph. 4:31, 32; 5:1, 2. And Christ says, "A new commandment I
give unto you, That ye .love one another; as I have loved you,
that ye also love one another. By this shall all men know that
ye are my disciples." John 13:34, 35. And Peter says, "Have
fervent charity among yourselves; for charity shall cover the
multitude of sins" (I Pet. 4:8); and love is the fulfilling of
the law. Rom. 13:8. But we must love God above all, as is
written, "If any man come to me, and hate not his father, and
mother, and wife, and children, and brethren, and sisters, yea,
and his own life also, he cannot be my disciple." Luke 14:26.
And further, "He that loveth
father or mother more than me is not worthy of me: and he that
loveth son or daughter more than me is not worthy of me.
Matthew 19:37. Thus, we must love Him above all, and for His
name forsake everything, and entirely deny ourselves. 16:24.
Hence, my dear sister, be content, and do not grieve
immoderately on this account; for it is the will of the Lord,
and His will must be done. We must part here once. Thus,
hasten, that we may all meet together when men shall not be
able to part us any more. May the good and almighty Lord full
of grace and truth make us fit hereto. Amen.</p>

<p>Farewell, and accept this in good part.</p>

<p class="c8">*"We," in the original.</p>

<h2>HANS VAN DEN WEGE, JANNEKEN VAN HULLE,<br />
AND JANNEKEN VAN RENTEGEM, A. D. 1570</h2> 

<p>Jan van den Wege, having risen early one morning, and then,
about seven o'clock, gone with his cousin to market, was
apprehended at the fish market at Ghent in Flanders, by master
Klaes (who was wont to ride out with the Dean of Ronse, in
order to assist in the apprehension of those called heretics)
and two other officers, and taken to the Sausselet (the city
prison), where master Klaes asked him concerning his place of
residence, which he refused to tell. He was then searched; but
they found nothing on his person except a hymn; hence they took
their departure f rom him, leaving him securely locked in
prison. Having, after many examinations and vexations, boldly
confessed his faith, and refusing to apostatize from it in any
wise, he was, on the 7th of November 1570, together with two
young maidens, named Janneken van Hulle, and Janneken van
Rentegem, sentenced to death for the living word of God. When
they were brought forth, almost entirely stripped, the
executioner put a gag into each one's mouth to prevent them
from speaking. Thus they went along in silence like sheep to
the slaughter, and saluted the brethren by nodding to them. A
brother was heard to say to them, "Be valiant." And a sister
said, "Contend valiantly for the truth." In their sentence it was
stated that they had been rebaptized, contrary to the royal
decree, also, that they had erred from the true faith, and
united with heretics, and that they were therefore sentenced to
be burned with fire. The executioner then placed each at a
stake, and strangled and burned them. Thus they finished their
course, and are now lying under the altar, awaiting the reward
of their sufferings.</p>

<h2>THE FIRST LETTER OF HANSKEN VAN DEN WEGE</h2> 

<p>I wish you, my cordially beloved and chosen sister, whom I
love from the very depth of my heart, the unfathomable,
abundant, great grace and mercy of the eternal and almighty
God, the heavenly Father; and also the great humility and
meekness, and the great peace of our Lord Jesus Christ, the
only and true Son of the living God; and the great power,
consolation and full joy of the Holy</p>

</div><div id="867"> 

<p>Ghost; this is my eternal and blessed wish and holy
salutation and perpetual memorial to you, my dear, chosen
sister; and also to all men that fear and love the Lord, and
call on Him out of a pure heart. This is ever my blessed wish
and holy salutation, to the eternal salvation of your souls,
and to the praise of the eternal, supreme, almighty God of
heaven and earth; to whose name be praise, thanks, glory and
honor, forever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>O see, my dear and much beloved chosen sister, what more
shall I wish you? or what more shall I write you than I have
written? But I repeat, and this from abundant, pure and fervent
love to God, with the holy, chosen apostle Peter, where he
writes to you, and also to us, and to all men, "Purify your souls in obeying the truth through the Spirit
unto unfeigned love of the brethren, and see that ye love one
another with a pure heart fervently: being born again, not of
corruptible seed, but of incorruptible, by the word of God,
which liveth and abideth forever. For all flesh is as grass,
and all the glory of man as the flower of grass. The sun is
risen, and hath withered the grass, and the beauty of it is
perished: but the word of the Lord endureth forever. I Pet.
1:22-25.O dear sister, what a good ointment and blessed
doctrine this is which Peter has here taught us by the Holy
Ghost. O yes, what a precious medicine this is which the Lord
has left us by His apostles, by which the soul can be purified
and healed. Hence let us open our ears, and unlock our hearts,
that we may hear with our ears and understand with our hearts,
what the obedience of the truth teaches us. For it is Jesus
Christ, the genuine truth, with all the precious medicines of
grace and mercy, and the sweet-smelling oil of love, whereby we
purify our souls, and by no other.</p>

<p>Hence, O dear sister, let us hear this truth, and obey it;
for He proceeded from the Father, yea, came from and was sent
by Him, a teacher from heaven, to teach us the way of truth,
and the life, which He was Himself; and all that He has heard
and seen from His Father, He has taught us, in order to purify
our souls, and save them for ever; for He teaches us,
saying, "Verily, verily, I say unto thee, Except a man be born
of water and of the Spirit, he cannot enter into the kingdom of
God." John 8:42; 1:4; 14:6; 8:38; 3:5.</p>

<p>O dear sister, earnestly pray the Lord for a right
understanding of this regeneration, which must be</p>

</div><div id="867"> 

<p>effected from above, of water and of the Spirit, since
otherwise we cannot enter into the kingdom of heaven. Hence,
let us pray with a firm confidence and a strong faith, yea,
pray with an unwavering mind to God the Most High, in spirit
and in truth; and it shall be given us, as He Himself says, "For
every one that asketh receiveth,". says the Lord Jesus Christ.
Matt. 7:8. Let us therefore so ask Him that we may receive it,
that is, understand the regeneration, and live in accordance
therewith, and then remain forever and constantly regenerated
unto the end. O yes, so born. from above, that whereas there
was nothing before, there is something now; and whereas
formerly we knew nothing but lying and cheating, together with
presumptuous pride, proud cursing, fighting, swearing, evil
speaking, and lived in much pleasure of the flesh, we now speak
the truth from the heart, and walk in the truth, as children
that are born of the truth; and live in the fear of our God,
with an humbled heart, in lowliness, gentleness, and in great
joy of the Spirit, and no longer go to dumb idols, to worship
or honor them, nor do we go into their Baal's dens, where
nothing but the commandments of men are taught, which doctrines
destroy men's souls, and with which the devil has destroyed the
whole world, for His name is destroyer. Rev. 9:11. O yes, dear
sister, whenever we went there, we saw them perform their mass
and abominable idolatry, which are but fables and commandments
of men, and instituted by the same destroyer, the devil. And
when they elevate their abominable idol, every one must fall
down before it, and worship and honor it. O what abominable
idolatry this is 1 Sentence has long ago been pronounced upon
them; for idolaters. says Paul, have no part in..the kingdom of
God; but their part, says John, is in the lake which burneth
with fire and brimstone: which is the second death. I Cor. 6:9;
Rev. 21:8. Hence, O dear sister, keep away from idols, and
touch not the unclean thing, and let us be turned from idolatry
to the service of the living God, to serve Him for He alone is
to be heard, praised, honored, worshiped, served, and loved,
forever. Yes, dear sister, let us thus apprehend the meaning of
Christ, that we be truly turned from the power of this -world,
where there is nothing but darkness, namely, the night of sin
(I Thess..5:7; Rom. 13:12); to the day of grace, where shines
in the beautiful Sun of righteousness, Jesus Christ, with all
His promises and grace (Mal. 4:2; Rom. 6:14); and from lies to
the truth, and from unrighteousness and wickedness to
righteousness and good works; and thus demonstrate in power,
that we are regenerated in humility of heart and spirit, love
one another with brotherly love out of a pure .heart, and have
peace with all men, if it be possible; yea, as ye would that
men should do to you, so do you also to them: for this is the
law and the prophets, says Christ, who is the infallible truth.
I Pet. 1:22; Rom. 12:18; Matt. 7:12.</p>

<p>Let us therefore well consider this, that we may not err;
for we would indeed be willing that men should show us much
favor and mercy, and always live peaceably with us; hence let
us also always show much f avor and mercy to all men, and do
them many kindnesses, thus showing love to them, and seek to
live in peace and love with one another, and with all men. Yes,
dear sister, let us so purify our souls as Peter says, "Purify
your souls in obeying the truth through the Spirit unto
unfeigned love of the brethren, and love one another with a
pure heart fervently: being born again, not of corruptible
seed, but of incorruptible, by the word of God, which liveth
and abideth forever." I Pet. 1:22, 23. Oh, yes, dear sister,
let us so follow the advice of Peter, that we obey the truth of
Christ, and through obedience purify our souls, and be truly
born from above, of water and of the Spirit, which must be
effected from high heaven, whereby we must be born again,
namely, of the water, as Christ says, "He that believeth on me,
as the Scripture hath said, out of his belly shall flow rivers
of living water." (But this spake He of the Spirit, which they
that believe on Him should receive.) John 7:38, 39. And by the
words of truth, as Christ Himself says, "The words that I speak
unto you, they are spirit, and they are life." John 6:63. Oh,
yes, dear sister, this is the true water and the true Spirit,
whereby we must be born again from above, if we are to see the
kingdom of heaven; for Christ gives and sends the Holy Spirit
from above down upon everyone whom He sees prepared; and His
Word He also brought from above, and hence this regeneration is
effected from above. John 15:26; 8:26; 3:3, 7.</p>

<p>Therefore, dear sister, let us take good heed, that we well
keep this regeneration, and constantly, all the days of our
life, walk before the eyes of the Lord in holiness, as the
truly regenerated children of God, who are not born of
corruptible seed, but of incorruptible, namely, by the word of
God, which liveth and abideth forever. Hence, my dear and much
beloved sister, if you are truly in this regeneration, which
has been effected in you from above, show forth the nature of
that of which you are born, so that you have all your
conversation in heaven, and are no longer minded toward flesh
and blood, nor anything that is visible, as Paul says, but
towards that which is invisible. Phil. 3:19, 20. For Paul says,
that our light affliction, which is but for a moment, worketh
for us a far more exceeding, and eternal weight of glory; while
we look not at the things which are seen, but at the things
which are not seen: for the things which are seen are temporal;
but the things which are not seen are eternal. II Cor. 4:17,
18. Hence let us remain steadfast, and look at and believe only
that which is invisible. For Peter says, "At the appearing of
the Lord Jesus Christ: whom having not seen, ye love; in whom,
though now ye see him not, yet believing, ye rejoiced with joy
unspeakable and full of glory: receiving the end of your faith,
even the salvation of your souls." I Pet. 1:7-9. Oh, yes,</p>

</div><div id="868"> 

<p>dear sister, let us do according to the doctrine brought us
from above through the Holy Ghost, that we purify our souls,
and be born again from above of water and of the Spirit, so
that we may see the kingdom of heaven, and forever possess it
through the grace of the Lord; and let us always firmly trust
and believe in the invisible God, and in the Lord Jesus Christ
our Redeemer, and the Saviour of the world, so that our souls
may be forever saved. Oh, yes, that we may be with all the
elect and regenerated children of God, and with all the saints
of the supreme God of heaven and earth, and with the heavenly,
great, and beautiful host of the holy angels of God, in
unspeakably great glory and joy, and glorious and imperishable
brightness; and may forever reign with the Lord of lords and
King of kings, in great glory, and in exceedingly great joy,
and then, with all the great heavenly, holy hosts, from great
joy of heart, forever praise, glorify, honor, and sanctify with
great honor, the exalted name of the Lord; for, glory belongs
to God in the highest, and on earth peace and good will toward
men. Luke 2:14. Herewith, my dear sister, I commend you to the
Lord, and to the words of His eternal grace. Amen.</p>

<p>Written out of great, fervent, brotherly love, to you
Cijntgen, my dearly beloved chosen sister, as a perpetual and
blessed memorial in the Lord, by Hansken, your poor, miserable
and weak brother, who is imprisoned at Ghent, in the Sausselet,
for the true Word of the Lord. Remember me in your prayers to
God, so that through me poor, miserable man, who am weak, the
exalted, holy name of the Lord may be honored and praised
forever; for it is good to sing praises unto our God. Amen. Ps.
147:1.</p>

<h2>THE SECOND LETTER FROM HANSKEN VAN DEN WEGE</h2> 

<p>The eternal, abundant, unfathomable, great grace and mercy
of God the heavenly Father, which came by Jesus Christ, the
only and true Son of God; and the great humility and meekness,
holiness and peace of our Lord Jesus Christ the Saviour of the
world, together with the great power, consolation and full joy
of the Holy Ghost; this I wish you from the depth of my heart,
and from the inmost of my soul, my dear and much beloved friend
Jacob Kesij, and mother Martijntgen; this is my perpetual and
blessed wish and holy salutation to you, and to all men that
fear and love the Lord, and call on Him out of a pure heart;
yea, may the Lord of eternal grace grant you this my blessed
wish and holy salutation, and make you wise in that which is
good, and simple in that which is evil, so that you may with
job be found perfect and upright, fearing God, and eschewing
evil. Amen. Rom. 16:19; Job 1:1.</p>

<p>Further, my dear and beloved friends Jacob and Martijntgen,
I pray you from the depth of my heart, and by the great and
fervent love and mercy of God, and by Jesus Christ the Son of
God, and this by His merits, bitter death, bleeding wounds,and
His precious blood, which He suffered to be shed on the cross
to purchase us, and to redeem us from the bonds of death; yea,
I beseech you and say with the apostle Paul, "Flee also youthful
lusts: but follow righteousness, faith, charity, peace, with
them that call on the Lord out of a pure heart." II Timothy
2:22. Oh, take heed to it, and follow faith, for without faith
it is impossible to please God, and he that believeth not shall
be damned, says Jesus Christ our Lord. Heb. 11:6; Mark 16:16.
Hence, O dear Jacob and Martijntgen, turn, turn, and follow the
true faith, which worketh by love (Galatians 5:6), yea, by the
fervent love of God, without which [faith] no one can now or
ever please God, as Paul says. Hence take good heed, that you
confirm the faith with love, and follow love with all the
strength of your heart, the nature of which love consists in
meekness and gentleness. Yea, charity envieth not; charity
vaunteth not itself, is not puffed up, doth not behave itself
unseemly, seeketh not her own, is not easily provoked, thinketh
no evil; rejoiceth not in iniquity, but rejoiceth in the truth;
beareth all things, believeth all things, hopeth all things,
endureth all things. Charity never faileth. I Corinthians 13:4.
Hence I repeat it, see well to it, that you follow this
beautiful fruit of love, and that it may be found with you
forever so that you may adorn your faith with true love, and
thus please God and be saved. Therefore, O my dear friends,
follow faith, love, and also peace with all men. For it is a
wisdom that is from above, and is first pure, then peaceable,
gentle, and easy to be entreated, full of mercy and good
fruits, without partiality, and without hypocrisy. And the
fruit of righteousness* is sown in peace of them that make
peace. James 3:17, 18. Hence, make peace, and continue therein,
that the peace of the Lord may rule in your hearts (Col. 3:15)
, and bring forth the fruit of righteousness to the praise of
the Lord, and to the salvation of your souls. Oh, yes, dear
Jacob and Martijntgen, do thus according to my request, and the
admonition of Paul, and you will not be deceived. Follow all
this righteousness which is by faith (Rom. 3:22), with all your
heart, and with all your strength and ability; pray, lament,
call, and weep in spirit and in truth, to God the heavenly
Father, for grace and mercy; yea, trust and hope in Him with
all your heart, and with steadfastness, and the Lord, who is
full of all goodness (Psalm 118:1), will be gracious unto you
according to His great goodness, and unfathomable mercy; for
the Lord is gracious and merciful, slow to anger, and of great
kindness, and repenteth Him of the evil; for the Lord is not
willing that any should perish, but that all should come to
repentance. Joel 2:13; 11 Pet. 3:9. Yea, this is His will; for
Christ says, "Repent ye, and believe the gospel." Mark 1:15.
Hence receive this good doctrine, so that you repent and bring
forth genuine fruits of repentance, and thus flee youthful
lusts. And love not the world-which liveth in</p>

<p class="c8">*"Of the Spirit," in the original.</p>

</div><div id="869"> 

<p>pleasure, as John says-neither the things that are in the
world; for if any man love the world, the love of the Father is
not in him. For all that is in the world, the lust of the
flesh, and the lust of the eyes, and the pride of life, is not
of the Father, but is of the world. And the world passeth away,
and the lust thereof: but he that doeth the will of God abideth
forever. I John 2:15-17. Hence I tell you once more: flee
carnal and youthful lusts in this world, that you be not
condemned with the world. Gal. 5:16; I Cor. 11:32. Oh, yes,
turn from this wicked generation, who live in pleasure, for
they are dead while they live, as Paul says. I Tim. 5:6.
Therefore, O Jacob and Martijntgen, turn away, turn away from
this wicked way of the ungodly, so that you may not with them
be punished without mercy by the Lord; for God will rain
lightnings,fire and brimstone upon the ungodly, and reward them
with a tempest. Rev. 18:4; Gen. 19:24; Exodus 9:24; Ps. 7:12.
For the Lord is righteous, and loves righteousness, so that
according to His righteousness He cannot let sinners go
unpunished; hence flee youthful lusts, but follow
righteousness, faith, charity, peace, with them that call on
God out of a pure heart. Ps. 11:7; II Tim. 2:22. Yes, dear
Jacob and Martijntgen, follow this high gift of the Lord,
namely, the wisdom that is from above; yea, I say, follow after
it, and bring forth genuine fruits of repentance, and it shall
be well with you. And always humble yourselves under the mighty
hand of God, and be no longer high-minded, but fear with great
humility of heart and of the spirit, before God the heavenly
Father; for God resisteth the proud, and giveth grace to the
humble. I Pet. 5:6; Rom. 11:20; I Pet. 5:5. Hence I repeat it:
humble yourselves under the mighty hand of God, that He may
exalt you in due time; for whosoever exalteth himself shall be
abased; and he that humbleth himself shall be exalted, says
Jesus Christ our Lord. Luke 14:11. Therefore, O dear Jacob and
Martijntgen, follow righteousness, and strive for it with all
your power and all the diligence of your heart; and sin no
more, lest a worse thing come unto you. John 5:14. And learn
henceforth truly to fear the Lord with all your heart; and
learn to love Him with all your strength, so that your names
may be written in the book of life, and you may thus through
God's great grace be forever saved, and may, with all the holy
angels in heaven, and with the great heavenly host, with the
Lord of lords, in unspeakably great joy, glory and brightness,
reign forever in heaven, where the great and holy name of the
Lord will be forever praised, glorified and honored; for glory
to God in the highest, and on earth peace, good will toward
men. Luke 2:14.</p>

<p>Herewith, I commend you to the Lord, and to the Word of His
grace. Amen. Written by me,</p>

<p class="c5">HANSKEN VAN DEN WEGE.</p>

<p>Imprisoned for the testimony of our Lord Jesus Christ.</p>

<h2>THE THIRD LETTER OF HANSKEN VAN DEN WEGE</h2> 

<p>My blessed wish, holy salutation and perpetual memorial to
you, Claerken, my dear sister, is, that you may live holy, and
die happy, and that you may arise with a holy body, acceptable
to the Lord, to the salvation of your soul, and also to the
praise and honor of the eternal and almighty God of heaven and
earth, to whose name be eternal praise, glory and honor, now
and forever. Amen.</p>

<p>O dear and much beloved chosen sister, I wish you from the
depth of my heart, and the inmost of my soul, much grace and
mercy from God our heavenly Father, who is true and almighty,
of whom are all things, and this through Jesus Christ our Lord,
the Son of the true and living God, by whom are all things, who
is the Saviour of the world, and especially of those that
believe; for He is our High Priest, Prince, Reconciler, and
Saviour, by His death and precious blood, which He once shed
for us; and this with great humility and meekness, in holiness
and peace; together with the great power, consolation and full
joy of the Holy Ghost. O yes, dear sister, may the Holy Ghost
who is the supreme comfort of our afflicted conscience, impel
and guide you into all truth. O Claerken, dear sister, strive
for this, and purify yourself thereto, that you may be a member
in the body of the Lord, and a stone in His temple; and so
humble yourself now, that it may be seen and perceived in you,
that you now humble your flesh and spirit, so that the Holy
Ghost may dwell in you; and that you also show forth the nature
of Him that dwells in you, by great gentleness, mercy, love and
peace toward all men, not being quarrelsome, not clamorous, not
cursing, not puffed up, nor proud, not minded to worship idols,
nor to hearken after the commandments of men, and also not
greedy of filthy lucre, which has to be left behind. Oh, yes,
Claerken, dear sister, flee all these abominations and evil
things, and moreover, all that are like them. Oh, yes, shun
them, as you would shun snakes and serpents; for if you come
too near you will be bitten by them so that no man can heal
you. Sir. 21:2. Hence, dear sister, separate from all these
abominations, and touch not the unclean thing; but strive to be
found excelling in good works, so that you may be fit for the
Spirit of God to dwell in you; and may at all times bring forth
the fruit of the Spirit; for the fruit of the Spirit is in all
goodness, righteousness and truth. Eph. 5:9. Yea, strive for
the kingdom of heaven, which is righteousness and peace, and
joy in the Holy Ghost, (Rom. 14:17). Amen.</p>

<p>And I greet my dear and much beloved chosen mother, who is
also my dearest sister in the Lord, very cordially and
affectionately; yea, I greet you, O dear mother, with all the
strength of my heart, and I wish you always and forever Jesus
Christ, the Son of the most high God, that He may, with His
great power, by which all things are made, uphold you in the
true way, that leads to life eternal, yea,</p>

</div><div id="870"> 

<p>to the new Jerusalem, where the streets are of pure gold, so
that you may enter in there, through His great grace, and thus
be forever saved, and live in eternal, great joy and rest, and
triumph and reign forever with the Lord of lords, and forever
praise, glorify, and honor His great, high and holy name; for
glory be to God in the highest, and on earth, peace, good will
toward men. Herewith I commend you forever to the only and
almighty Lord, and to the eternal words of His grace. Amen.</p>

<p>Adieu, adieu, dear mother, dear mother, farewell, farewell;
O yes, blessed, blessed. Amen, amen.</p>

<h2>THE FOURTH LETTER OF HANSKEN VAN DEN WEGE</h2> 

<p>The unfathomable and abundant great grace and mercy of God
our heavenly Father, given and bestowed upon us through Jesus
Christ the Son of the true and living God, and Jesus Christ,
with all His humility, meekness, and great holiness, yea, the
great power, consolation and full joy of the Holy Ghost, this
we wish you from the depth of our soul, and with all the
strength of our heart, our dear and much beloved chosen sister
in the Lord, together with all that fear and love the Lord, and
call on Him out of a pure heart. This is our perpetual, blessed
wish, yea, holy salutation; may the Lord grant you this our
blessed wish and holy salutation, and make you wise in that
which is good, and simple in that, which is evil; so that you
may be found upright and perfect, fearing God, and eschewing
evil. Amen.</p>

<p>Further, dear and much beloved chosen sister in the Lord, we
wish you and also us, and all men, the eternal, great and
blessed treasure to which Christ compares the kingdom of
heaven; which a man found and hid, and for joy over it went and
sold all that he had, and bought that field. Yes dear sister in
the Lord, let us also be minded as he was that had found the
treasure, since the treasure is now also revealed to us,
through Jesus Christ the Son of God, let us also hide it, and
this with great diligence, with prayer, supplication and
fasting in the Spirit to God, for where there is a treasure,
the thieves and murderers seek to get it; hence let us take
good heed that it be not taken f rom us, and let us go in
righteousness and peace, and with great joy and gladness, in
the Holy Ghost; for the kingdom of God is righteousness, and
peace, and joy in the Holy Ghost. Rom. 14:17. Hence let us thus
go on, since to us is revealed the treasure that lies hidden in
the field before so many. Let us therefore be diligent, yes,
dear sister; let us go on, and with great steadfastness in
meekness follow the infallible truth Jesus Christ; for He is
the way, the truth, and the life. Hence let us always follow
Him, and let us thus go on until the time that we have forsaken
and sold everything, and let us then buy the field in which the
treasure is hid; for he that does not forsake everything, says
Christ, is not worthy of me. For if it were hid in a great,
broadfield many would come and seek for it, but only one would
find the treasure; so also the good and blessed treasure, Jesus
Christ the Son of God, lies hid in the field of the holy
Scriptures, and many indeed come and seek for it, but only one
finds the same; namely, all the members that are in the body of
which Jesus Christ is the head, have found the treasure Jesus
Christ, with all His graces and merits; and also eternal life.
They now may well greatly rejoice in the Holy Ghost, that they
have found the great, beautiful, and holy treasure (Jesus
Christ), and say with the prophet, "The lines are fallen unto me
in pleasant places; the Lord is the portion of my inheritance:
therefore I will not fear; though my flesh and my heart fail,
thou, O Lord, art the strength of my heart, and my portion
forever; yea, the Lord is my portion, saith my soul, therefore
will I hope in him." Ps. 16:6; 5; 73:26; Lam. 3:24.</p>

<p>Therefore my dear and much beloved chosen sister in the
Lord, let us go on with a valiant, firm and strong confidence,
and with great humility and meekness of heart, and with a great
desire after our holy and blessed treasure (Jesus Christ); and
.the Lord shall desire our beauty, and when the Lord shall come
with His mighty angels, and with the sound of the trumpet, in
the clouds, to reward every man according to his works, then
shall the elect be gathered together from the four winds of
heaven, and they shall, as sheep, be set on His right hand, and
the ungodly, as goats, on the left; then shall we hear the
sweet and blessed words: Come, ye blessed, inherit the kingdom
of my Father, prepared for you from the foundation of the
world. II Thess 1:7; Matt. 16:27; 24:30, 31; 25:33, 34. Then we
shall enter into the great, beautiful and imperishable glory of
the Lord, where we shall be in great glory and unspeakable,
great and eternal joy, and thus forever be with the Lord of
lords, King of kings, God of gods, and Father of fathers, and
praise, thank, glorify, honor and sanctify Him, for Holy, holy,
is the holy Lord God Almighty, which was, and is, and is to
come. Rev. 4:8. But to them on the left hand He shall say:
Depart, ye cursed, into everlasting fire, prepared for you and
the devil; there shall be weeping and gnashing of teeth. Hence,
O dear and much beloved in the Lord, let us take good heed,
that we do not sleep in sin, lest our treasure be taken; for
when people sleep, thieves go and rob them. But let us watch
and pray and adorn ourselves as the five wise virgins, who had
oil in their lamps; so that when the Bridegroom comes, we may
enter in to His glorious and imperishable marriage, where the
Lord will be praised forever, for it is a good thing to sing
praises to our God.</p>

<p>Herewith I commend you to the Lord, and to the rich Word of
His grace. Amen. Always remember us in your holy prayers to
God, as Paul says, "Remember them that are in bonds as bound
with them." ITeb. 13:2. For we also remember you for the best
in our prayers, according to our</p>

</div><div id="871"> 

<p>weak ability, for it is written: All things whatsoever ye
would that men should do to you, do ye even so to them: for
this is the law and the prophets. Matt. 7:12.</p>

<p>Written out of great brotherly love, and sent by us three
prisoners for the word and the holy name of the Lord, to you
our dear and much beloved sister in the Lord. Amen:</p>

<h1>BARBELKEN GOETHALS, AND SAERKEN VAN DUERHOVE, A. D. 1570</h1> 

<p>At Ghent, in Flanders, there were imprisoned for their
faith, two pious sisters, named Barbelken Goethals and Saerken
van Duerhove. While confined in the convent of St. Peter; they
had to resist many temptations, sufferings and vexations; but
adhering nevertheless steadfastly to the divine truth, they
were finally sentenced to death as heretics, and, on the 21st
of November, 1570, burnt without Ghent, in consequence of which
they are delivered, and shall remain so forever, from the
eternal and unquenchable fire of hell.</p>

<h2>HERE FOLLOWS A LETTER WHICH BARBELKEN<br />
GOETHALS WROTE IN PRISON, AND SENT TO<br />
JASPER N., ONE OF HER FELLOW BELIEVERS</h2> 

<p>The abundant and unfathomable great grace, peace and mercy
of God our heavenly Father, and Jesus Christ, His only and
eternal dear and beloved Son, by whom we are redeemed and
loosed from the chains of hell and the shadows of death, and
reconciled through His precious blood alone: Him I wish you, my
dearest brother in the Lord; as the preserver of your soul; and
that He would comfort you with the great consolation, joy, and
gladness of the Holy Ghost, in all that may befall you yet for
the true testimony of our dear Lord Jesus Christ. To this God
who only is wise, be praise, glory, honor, power, strength and
might, forever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>After all proper, cordial and friendly salutations to you,
jasper; my dearest brother in the Lord, whom I love with godly
love in the truth (II John 1), and this for the truth's sake,
Oh, this the Lord knows, to whom all hearts are known, O my
dear and much beloved brother in the Lord, know that it is
still my purpose to fear our dear Lard from the depth of my
heart, according to my weakness, all the days of my life, and
hope by the help of the Lord never to separate from the truth;
not for anything that is in the world, neither for riches,
silver or gold, do I hope by His grace, to apostatize from our
dear Lord, to which end may the almighty God strengthen me,
this I pray Him. O my dearest brother in the Lord, I would far
rather with Susanna fall into the hands of men, than to sin in
the sight of the Lord; for the pure and undefiled Susanna
said, "If I do this thing, it is death unto me: and if I do it
not, I cannot escape your hands. It is better for me to fall
into the hands of men, and not to do it, than to sin in the
sight of the, Lord," Susanna 22, 23. I likewise well know,that
i f I forsake the truth death is unto me; but, oh no! this I
hope by the grace of the Lord never to do; but it is much
better for me, also to fall into the hands of men, than that I
should forsake the Lord my God. Oh no, my dearest brother in
the Lord! Oh, let us never depart from the truth of the Lard,
for so many beautiful promises are promised us, and if we
continue steadfast unto death we shall be saved. O my much
beloved, dear brother in the Lord, Oh, if we may only be
.saved, that is enough; which I hope by His great grace, if we
continue in His Word, we shall; for He is faithful that
promised, who also will do it; for He says by His pious prophet
Isaiah, comforting His own, "Though a mother forget her own child, which she herself has
brought forth, yet will I not forget thee." Isa, 49:15.
Therefore, my affectionately beloved brother in the Lord,
behold, how faithfully our dear Lord comforts us; hence, dear
and beloved in the Lord, let us be of good courage, and
willingly labor, for it (our labor) will, not be in vain in the
Lord. I Cor. 15:58. Hence I am valiant and bold, to the Lord be
praise and glory, now and forever, who so faithfully succors me
according to His promise, Oh, who should not fear such .a God,
who so preserves His tender branches; and I also trust
valiantly in my Lord and God, that He will preserve me where I
am, and, if it be His will, deliver me out of this murderer's
den.</p>

<p>Hence, O my dearest and much beloved brother in Christ
Jesus, let us have good courage, though we meet with more
adversity than the world. O, let us look unto Jesus Christ, the
Author and Finisher of our faith, how He went before us in much
suffering and reproach. And all the holy prophets, Oh, let us
look to them, how they went before us, through so much
tribulation, yea, in destitution and affliction; of whom the
world was not worthy. For if they had been mindful of that
country from whence they came out, they might have had
opportunity to have returned; but now they desired a better
country, that is, a heavenly: wherefore God is not ashamed to
be called their God. Heb. 11. Thus, O Jasper, my most
affectionately beloved brother in the Lord, God will also not
be ashamed to be called our God, if we continue faithfully in
His truth, and do not again lay' the foundation of repentance
from dead works, and of faith toward God. Hebrews 6:1. Oh, no,
oh, no, my dearest brother in the Lord, let us not again lay
the foundation of repentance from dead works, and of faith
towards God; but let us hold fast the faith which we have in
Christ our dear Lord. Oh, I hope by the help of God to hold
fast the faith which I have in Christ Jesus; nor shall, the
Lord helping me, any man separate me from the love of God, as
also Paul says, "Who shall separate us from the love of Christ?
shall tribulation, or distress, or persecution, or famine, or
nakedness, or peril, or sword? As it is written, For thy sake
we are killed all the dray long; we are accounted as sheep for
the slaughter. Nay, in all these things we are more than
conquer-ors through him that loved us. For I am persuaded,</p>

</div><div id="872"> 

<p>that neither death, nor life, nor angels, nor
principalities, nor powers, nor things present, nor things to
come, nor height, nor depth, nor any other creature, shall be
able to separate us from the love of God, which is in Christ
Jesus our Lord." Rom. 8:35-39. Therefore, my dearest, beloved
brother in the Lord, let us be of good courage in the Lord; for
they can not hurt a hair of our head without the will of our
Father. Luke 12:7.</p>

<p>O Jasper, my dear and beloved brother in the Lord, I am of
such good cheer, the Lord be praised, that I should never be
able to describe the joy which I feel in my heart. Oh, what
courage I have to fight against the princes and rulers of
darkness; I think that I could say with David, "I will not be
afraid of ten thousands of people, that have set themselves
against me round about." Ps. 3:6. Oh, what joy I have; praise,
glory and honor be to God forever for the great joy that He
gives me. O my dearest brother, rejoice with me, and let it
strengthen you, as I hope that it will. Thus I have briefly
written to my dearest brother in Christ Jesus, with the small
gift that I have received through the grace of the Lord.
Herewith I will commend you to our dear Lord, and to the rich
Word of His grace. I take leave, and say, "Adieu, adieu, adieu,
farewell, farewell, farewell, my dearest brother in the Lord,
till we meet again. Though we must part here, and be separated
by men, I hope that we shall meet again where men can part us
no more."</p>

<p>O Jasper, my dearest brother in the Lord, acquit yourself
valiantly unto the end in the word of God; I hope to do the
same. Again I say, "Adieu, adieu I farewell, farewell! we must
now part." Oh, I beseech you most affectionately, to receive my
simple letter in good part, as I hope you will, since I have
done it out of pure love. Written in'bonds by me, your weak
sister in the Lord, who lies in bonds in St. Peter's, for the
true testimony of Jesus Christ. Keep this letter in remembrance
of me; I hope to seal it with my blood. Always fear God, but
not men.</p>

<p class="c5">BARBELKEN GOETHALS.</p>

<h2>TEN PERSONS, MEN AS WELL AS WOMEN, BURNED FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, AT DORDRECHT, ABOUT THE YEAR 1570</h2> 

<p>Ancient and credible memoirs tell us as indubitable facts,
that about the year of our Lord 1570, two very devout persons,
a man and a woman, whose names we have not been able to
ascertain, were sought for by the bailiff of the city of
Dordrecht, because they were called Anabaptists, and finally
found in the Marienbon Street of said city, in a house from
which was suspended the sign of a boot. As they steadfastly
adhered to their faith, both were shortly after burnt in the
market field, beyond the scales, where then was the place of
execution.</p>

<p>Also, that seven others, men as well as women,of the same
religion, who had come from Breda,* when they could by no means
be moved therefrom, suffered like punishment, namely, by fire,
until death ensued; which took place in the plain, not far from
the Menne bridge, beyond the powder magazine being the other
place of execution.</p>

<p>About the end of the year, namely, in the month of November,
when that great and terrible flood, that came on All-Saints-Day
(of which almost everyone knows something) had come to an end,
it is stated, that a certain Anabaptist widow in the Armetij
Street was taken from a room at the side of a stairway by the
bailiff and the stadtholder; which widow some time afterwards,
as she would not apostatize from her faith, also had to die in
the flames.</p>

<p>We made search for the examinations and death sentences of
the afore-mentioned pers ns, in the ordinary's criminal city
records of thaf time, but did not find them, nor of J. W. van
Kuyck and Adriaentgen Jans van Molenaersgraef, who were put to
death two years afterwards; though there were several living
witnesses of it in our time, who saw the death of said persons,
together with all the circumstances. This being the case it
appears that the papists were ashamed to put the court
proceedings and death sentences of said persons into the city
records, since it seemed that the country and at the same time
also this city should before long change government and
religion, which about two years afterwards was accomplished
through the coming of William I, prince of Orange; and thus the
constraint over the faith and conscience ceased at the same
time, at said place.</p>

<p><i>Further Observation.-As regards</i> the persons who then
(in the year 1570) sat in court, and administered justice, they
were, according to the record of Johan van Beverwijck, in his
register of the magistracy of Dordrecht, as follows</p>

<p>Adriaen van Bleyenbergh Adriaenss, bailiff of said city, who
had entered on his office in the year 1549, and completed his
time in the year 1571.</p>

<p>Arent van der Mijle Sir Corneliss, burgomaster of the
community.</p>

<p>Together with nine judges: Gijsbrecht van Haerlem Jans;
Cornelis van Diemen Jacobss; Huybrecht Jonge Adriaenss; Jan van
Slingelandt Sir Ottenss; Wourick van Drenkwaert Sir Wilmss; Jan
Janss Elandtss; Bondewijn Heerman Gijsbrechtss; Dierick van
Beverwijck Sir Philips; Cornelis van Mosyenbroeck Sir
Corneliss.</p>

<p>However, whether they all concurred in this sentence, or
only some of them, is not known to us.</p>

<h2>JELIS CLAVERSS, LIJSABET, WIFE OF CLASS DE
VRIES,<br />
NELLEKEN JASPERS, AND WITH THEM THIRTY<br />
THREE OTHER PERSONS, A. D. 1571</h2> 

<p>In the year 1571, thirty six persons were apprehended at
Antwerp, in Brabant, for the truth of the</p>

<p class="c8">* Of these martyrs from Breda mention seems to be
made also in one of the letters of Jan Wouterss van Kuyck,</p>

</div><div id="873"> 

<p>Gospel of Christ and following the same. Among them were
Jelis Claverss, Lijsabet, wife of Claes de Vries, and Nelleken
Jaspers, whom we think to have also been among this number,
which comprised six men and thirty women, some of whom were
burnt, and some suffered drowning with great constancy. But
said Lijsabet died with a screw in her mouth, by which she was
prevented from speaking, that she should not tell the
spectators how innocently she died; in which deed the monks and
priests more than filled up the measure of their forefathers,
the bloodthirsty Pharisees; for they stopped only their own
ears, that the truth should not be told them by Stephen, the
worthy man of God; these new Pharisees, the monks, on the other
hand, caused screws to be put on the tongues of these pious and
faithful witnesses of God, and the tip of the tongue touched
with a red hot iron, that the swelling should prevent it from
slipping out. Thus these pious persons [were put to death] not
on account of any crime or uproar or fraud, nor for any heresy,
but only because they had gone out of Babylon, and united with
Christ, herein following the teaching of the Holy Ghost. II
Cor. 6:17. Hence they valiantly contended for the belief of the
truth, and shall, from the Prince of truth, through grace, for
this short, little labor, receive the crown of eternal glory,
and enjoy it forever.</p>

<p>The above-mentioned Nelleken Jaspers was a girl of seventeen
years, whose memory has been much sung on the street, in these
countries. She was confined in prison for about a year, so that
she was about eighteen years old when she died. During her
imprisonment she suffered severe temptations, by way of threats
of a terrible death as well as by fair promise of an
advantageous marriage, and the like. But even as Christ, her
captain, had repelled and vanquished all temptations of the
enemy, so also this young heroine faithfully followed unto
death the footsteps of her Bridegroom Christ Jesus, and
continued steadfast unto death, and, through the grace of God,
received the end of the faith, which is the salvation of the
soul. I Pet. 1:9. Though some would claim Nelleken Jaspers for
the Protestant religion (as they also unjustly do concerning
Anneken van den Howe, who was buried alive without Brussels),
this is nevertheless utterly in vain, seeing, that when this
was recorded, credible persons were still living who knew
better, testifying that she died in one and the same faith with
these pious confessors (called Mennists). This appears also
from Joost Verkindert's letter an the 20th of June, where she
is described as of like faith with Joost and Lauwerens Andries,
who greet the brethren with the peace of the Lord.</p>

<h2>DIRCK MIEUWESS, A. D. 1571</h2> 

<p>After much persecution, murdering and burning of the true
followers of Christ, there was apprehended at Vlissingen in
Zealand, also a pious brother named Dirck Mieuwess, and after
long imprisonment the bailiff and jailer permitted him. to
render them certain services for the benefits of their
households, in consequence of which he, together with some of
his fellow prisoners, was frequently allowed to leave the
prison. Hence, when a favorable opportunity presented itself,
some of the prisoners escaped and advised said Dirck Mieuwess
to flee with them, which this friend of Christ refused to do,
fearing that thereby the jailer, who had permitted him to go
out, should get into trouble. Thus remaining in imprisonment,
he, on the 6th of March, 1570, before Easter, was sentenced to
be tortured on the rack, and the following year, namely, A. D.
1571, on the 8th of May, he was burned at said place, evincing
great steadfastness, and offered up his temporal and
corruptible body as a sweet-smelling savor unto the Lord of
heaven and earth; not suffering as a thief or murderer, nor as
one that seeks other people's property, but only for the truth
of Christ, and a good conscience. I Peter 2:19. Hence there are
sure to him the promises of Christ, who has said, "Blessed are
they which are persecuted for righteousness' sake: for theirs
is the kingdom of heaven." Matt. 5:10.</p>

<h2>ANNEKEN HEYNDRICKS, A. D. 1571</h2> 

<p>In the year 1571, there was burnt alive, at Amsterdam in
Holland, for the testimony of Jesus, a woman named Anneken
Heyndricks, aged about fifty-three years. Having come from
Friesland to Amsterdam, she was betrayed by her neighbor, the
underbailiff, who entered her house, in order to apprehend her.
She said to him with a meek spirit, "Neighbor Evert, what is
your wish? if you seek me, you can easily find me; here I am at
your service." This Tudas the traitor said, "Surrender, in the
name of the king." And he bound Anneken with a rope, and led
her along with him, as Judas and the scribes had done with our
predecessor, Jesus. When they had arrived on the Dam, Anneken
said, that they should not hesitate to look at her, since she
was neither a harlot nor a thief, but a prisoner for the name
of Jesus. After arriving in prison, she thanked and praised her
Lord and Creator with an humble heart, for counting her worthy
to suffer for His name's sake. And she boldly confessed her
faith before Pieter the bailiff and the other lords. They
greatly tormented her with Baal's priests, in order to cause
her to apostatize; but through the grace of God she valiantly
resisted it. This greatly astonished the bailiff, that she did
not pay more regard to his spiritual lords, and he said to
Anneken, "Sir Albert, our chaplain, is such a holy fellow, that
he ought to be mounted in fine gold; and you will not hear him,
but make sport of him; hence you must die in your sins, so far
are you strayed from God."</p>

<p>Thus they suspended this God-fearing aged woman (who could
neither read nor write) by her</p>

</div><div id="874"> <br />

<p>hands, even as Christ had been, and by severe torturing
sought to extort from her the names of her fellow believers,
for they thirsted for more innocent blood. But they obtained
nothing from Anneken, so faithfully did God keep her lips.
Hence the bailiff preferred against her the charge of being
infected with heresy, having forsaken the mother, the holy
church, now about six years ago and having adopted the cursed
doctrine of the Mennonists, by whom she had been baptized on
her faith, and married a husband among them. Thereupon she was
sentenced to be burnt alive. She thanked the lords, and said
with humility, that if she had done amiss to any one, she asked
them to forgive her. But the lords arose and made no reply. She
was then tied on a ladder. Then she said to Evert the
underbailiff, her neighbor, "Thou Judas, I have not deserved it,
that I should be thus murdered." And she asked him not to do
this any more, or God should avenge it on him. Thereupon Evert
angrily said, that he would bring all those that were of her
mind into the same trouble. Then the other bailiff came once
more with a priest, tormenting her, and saying that if she did
not renounce, she should go from this fire into the eternal. Thereupon Anneken
steadfastly said, "Though I am sentenced and condemned by you,
yet what you say does not come from God; for I firmly trust in
God, who shall help me out of my distress, and deliver me out
of all my trouble." They did not let her speak any more but
filled her mouth with gunpowder, and carried her thus from the
city hall to the fire into which they cast her alive. This
done, the traitor Evert, the underbailiff, was seen to laugh,
as though he thought he had done God an acceptable service. But
the merciful God, who is the comfort of the pious, shall give
this faithful witness, for this brief and temporal tribulation,
an everlasting reward, when her stopped mouth shall be opened
in fullness of joy, and these sad tears (for the truth's sake)
shall be wiped away, and she be crowned with eternal joy with
God in heaven.</p>

<p>Concerning this, see a hymn in some old hymn books.</p>

<p>NOTE.-We have obtained the sentence of death of this pious
and valiant heroine of Jesus Christ, as the same was read to
her in court; as also, the record of her torture, which, as it
appears, took place</p>

<p style="font-style: normal; font-weight: medium"><br /></p>

</div><div id="875"> 

<p>two weeks before her death; which we shall place here one
after the other, as they were copied by the secretary from the
criminal records of the city.</p>

<h2>SENTENCE OF DEATH OF ANNEKEN HEYNDRICKS,<br />
SURNAMED DE VLASTER</h2> 

<p>Whereas, Anna Heyndricks daughter, alias, Anna de Vlaster,
formerly citizeness of this city, at present a prisoner here,
unmindful of her soul's salvation, and the obedience which she
owed to our mother, the holy church, and to his royal majesty,
as her natural lord and prince, rejecting the ordinances of the
holy church, has neither been to confession, nor to the holy,
worthy sacrament, for. six or seven years since [but has
dared], to go into the assembly of the reprobated sect of the
Mennonists, or Anabaptists, and has also held conventicles or
meetings at her house; and has further, about three years ago,
forsaking and renouncing the baptism received in her infancy
from the holy church, been rebaptized, and then received the
breaking of bread according to the manner of the Mennonist
sect, and was also married to her present husband in Mennonist
manner, by night, in a country house; and though she, the
prisoner, has, by my lords of the court, as well as by divers
ecclesiastical persons, been urged and repeatedly admonished,
to leave the afore-mentioned reprobated sect, she nevertheless
refuses to do it, persisting in her obstinacy and stubbornness,
so that she, the prisoner, according to what has been
mentioned, has committed crime against divine and human
majesty, as by said sect disturbing the common peace and
welfare of the land, according to the import of the decrees of
his majesty, existing in regard to this; which misdemeanors,
for an example unto others, ought not to go unpunished;
therefore, my lord of the court, having heard the demand of my
lord the bailiff, seen the confession of the prisoner, and
having had regard to her obstinacy and stubbornness, have
condemned her, and condemn her by these presents, to be,
according to the decrees of his royal majesty, executed with
fire, and declare all her property confiscated for the benefit
of his majesty aforesaid. Done in court, on the 10th of
November, in the year 1571, in presence of the judges, by the
advice of all the burgomasters, in my knowledge, as secretary,
and as was subscribed</p>

<p class="c5">W. PIETERSS.</p>

<p class="c8"><i>Concerning the torturing of the
afore-mentioned</i><br />
<i>Anna Heyndricks, and when this occurred</i></p>

<p>She was tortured on the 27th of October, in the year 1571,
according to the previous sentence of the judges, as appears
from the record of the confession.</p>

<p>Thus extracted from the book of criminal sentences of the
city of Amsterdam. Preserved in the archives there.</p>

<p class="c5">N. N.</p>

<h2>WOLFGANG PINDER, A. D. 1571</h2> 

<p>In this year 1571, Brother Wolfgang Pinder was apprehended
through treachery, at Scharding,in Bavaria. The chancellor of
Burkhausen was at Scharding at that time; he came himself,
apprehended and bound him, and took him thence to Burkhausen,
where he had to resist many assaults and temptations from the
host of false prophets, such as priests and others, who
vehemently assailed him, in order that he should renounce his
faith, and suffer himself to be instructed by them. To this end
they used great diligence, and employed all manner of subtilty,
to see whether they could not lead him astray, by fair, smooth
words, by false doctrine, or by arrogance and threats; but he
allowed himself in no wise to be moved from the known way of
the truth, into which God had helped him. When the priests
therefore could accomplish nothing, the executioner was on hand
the following night, who had to lay hold of him, and he was
vehemently tortured, racked and stretched most lamentably, so
that his hands swelled greatly and he could not stand on his
feet, so cruelly and unmercifully had the children of Satan
treated him, according to the manner of their father, who is
full of wrath against the human family, and works through his
children all the works of wickedness, wherever he can.</p>

<p>Once two priests came to said brother; one of them talked
with him, and admonished him to forsake his error and be
converted; but brother Wolfgang, though still suffering great
pain from the torturing and racking, said to him with a manful
heart, "O you priest, do repent, and turn from your sinful life,
and false doctrine; for you are a false prophet, and one of the
rogues that go about in sheep's clothing, and cover their
deceitfulness and rascality with long robes; but inwardly you
are ravening wolves, upon whom the Lord has pronounced many
woes." At this the priest got angry and blushed, as did also
the other; and they could not accomplish their purpose with
him. Finally they sent him back from Burkhausen to Scharding,
where he had originally been apprehended. In both places they
tried him hard, but could not accomplish their purpose with
him. When he could not be moved, and would not follow their
false doctrine, he had to lay down his life. They unexpectedly
set a day, and he was taken out early in the morning to be
executed, without any judicial sentence, which brother Wolfgang
demanded. But such course of action on their part need not
surprise one at all, for they have nothing to prefer against
the pious, and cannot find any cause of death in them.</p>

<p>Thus the executioner came, and removed the collar from his
neck, but he seized him with fear and trembling. Brother
Wolfgang knelt down, and commended his spirit into the hands of
his Lord and God. The executioner handled him very badly; he
could not strike him properly, nor execute him with dispatch;
he finally, while he was lying on the</p>

</div><div id="876"> 

<p>earth, had to hack or cut off his heal as best he could; so
that he himself was in great fear, and in great peril of his
life from the people present, so that he vowed, never again in
his life to execute any brethren. There were many people
present who saw how valiant and brave he was. This occurred
shortly after Candlemas, in the year 1571. After he had been
imprisoned almost half a year, he had thus to shed his blood
for the faith in Jesus Christ, and passed over to the Lord's
host, who must in faith, by patient suffering, take possession
of the kingdom of joy. The traitor who had informed against
him, subsequently fared very badly, as did also the chancellor,
who had apprehended him; their good days soon came to an end,
as it generally goes with such Judases, who sin against the
pious, innocent sheep of the Lord, and thirst for their blood:
misfortune overtakes them through the wrath of God, and does
not suffer them to remain long at ease.</p>

<h2>JOOST VAN DER STRATEN, A. D. 1571</h2> 

<p>Joost van der Straten, born at Teems in the district of
Waes, in Flanders, a chairmaker by trade, was, when he was about seventy years old, taken from his
work, and apprehended with his whole household, outside of
Antwerp, on the Kiel (where now the fort stands), and they
were, by the Spaniards, who apprehended them, brought to
Antwerp. His wife and daughter, however, belonging to no
religion, were released in course of time; but upon Joost many
tortures were inflicted, in order to make him apostatize. But
as he remained steadfast, after an imprisonment of three days,
on Shrove Tuesday, A. D. 1571, his mouth was screwed open, and
he was thus burnt alive in the marketplace, before the city
hall, and then suspended from a stake in the gallows-field. The
Duke of Alva was in Antwerp at that time.</p>

<h2>HANS VAN DER STRATEN A. D. 1571</h2> 

<p>Shortly after Shrove Tuesday, in the year 1571, the Duke of
Alva removed from Antwerp to Brussels, taking with him all the
prisoners, those of the reformed as well as those of the
Anabaptistic religion, among which prisoners there were also
this Hans van der Straten, aged about thirty-one years, born at
Kortrijck, and his wife Tanneken, aged</p>

<p style="font-style: normal"><br /></p>

</div><div id="877"> 

<p>past seventeen years, born at Mechlin. As Hans firmly
adhered to his faith and the divine truth, he was sentenced to
death, and conducted outside of Brussels with his mouth screwed
open, and there burnt alive to ashes, about the middle of Lent,
in the year 1571. But his wife, to whom he had been married
only six weeks, and who was still very young, finally, through
many vexations and tortures, apostatized from her faith, and
was put into a convent at Breda, from whence, at a favorable
opportunity, she escaped, and went to Danswijck, where she,
after having fully repented of her apostasy, again united with
the church, and thereafter always led a pious life until her
godly death.</p>

<h2>GERRIT CORNELISS, A. D. 1571</h2> 

<p>In the year 1571, there was apprehended at Amsterdam in
Holland, for the truth's sake, as he was standing and working
in a lighter-boat, a young brother, named Gerrit Corneliss. The
bailiff bound 'him, and led him to the city hall, where, the
next day, he was examined and interrogated concerning his
faith, which he freely confessed; but when they wanted him to
name some of his fellow believers, he would not do it, and
hence had to suffer the torture. When he had been tortured
once, and was dressed again, his eyes were blindfolded with a
cloth, and his hands having been tied together, he was drawn up
by them, and left thus suspended, whereupon he was again
stripped, and severely scourged with rods; but no matter how he
was tortured, he did not name any one. He was then laid upon
the rack again, and while lying upon it, they caused him to be
scourged with rods, urine poured into his mouth, and burning
candles held under his arms; whereupon, having been stripped
naked again, and his shirt bound before his nakedness, he was
as before drawn up by his hands, with a weight attached to his
feet, and leaving him thus suspended they went out, and
returning after some time, they spitefully said to him, that if
he would name no one, they should thus deal with him in this
manner all day: but God (whom he thanked for it) kept his lips,
that no one was brought into trouble by his speaking. In short,
he was so tortured, that he could not walk, but had to be
carried in a chair.</p>

<p>Some days after, having been brought into court, he was
mockingly crowned with a hat of flowers, and sentenced to be
strangled and burned. While listening to this sentence he
evinced joyfulness and patience, until he arrived at the stake,
where he very fervently prayed after this manner, "O Father and
Lord, be gracious unto me; let me be one of Your least lambs,
or the least member of Your body. O Lord, who lookest down here
from on high, and art a discerner of the hearts and of every
hidden thing, before whom all things are to be accounted as
nothing, Thou knowest my simple love towards Thee; accept me,
and forgive them that inflict this suffering upon me." Having
risen, hecried to the people, "O men, eternity is so long, Oh,
yes, eternity is so long; but these sufferings here are over
very soon. But the conflict here is so fierce and severe; Oh,
how fearful I am yet; O flesh, bear and resist a little longer,
for this is the last conflict." When the rope had been placed
around his neck, he cried, "O heavenly Father, into thy hands I
commend my spirit;" and with this he sweetly died and was then
burnt. Thus he offered up his sacrifice, boldly standing up for
the name of Christ, not fearing pain, suffering, shame, nor
these worldly lords, but constantly striving valiantly unto
death; hence there shall also, at the last day, when the Lamb
that was slain shall open the books of life, his name be found
therein; but the apostate shall be written in the earth, and
the earth, with the works that are therein, shall be burned.
Rev. 2:10; 5:6; 20:12; 3:5; Jer. 17:13; II Peter 3:10.</p>

<p>NOTE.-As we have obtained a true copy, from the book of
criminal sentences of the city of Amsterdam, of the death
sentence as well as of the two torturings which this friend of
God endured before his death, together with clear information
when all this occurred, we deem it well to add the same here,
so that no one may in anywise doubt the truth of what has been
related, but may be fully assured of it.</p>

<h2>SENTENCE OF DEATH OF GERRIT CORNELISS, SUR<br />
NAMED BOON</h2> 

<p>Whereas Gerrit Corneliss, alias Gerrit Boon, boatman,
citizen of this city, at present a prisoner here, unmindful of
his soul's. salvation, and the obedience which he owed to our
mother the holy church, and to his imperial majesty, as his
natural lord and prince, rejecting the ordinances of the holy
church, has been neither to confession nor to the holy
sacrament for ten years past, and has further dared repeatedly
to go into the assembly of the reprobated sect of the
Mennonists or Anabaptists, and has also, about eight years ago,
renouncing and forsaking the baptism received .by him in his
infancy from the holy church, been rebaptized, and afterwards
repeatedly received the breaking of bread according to the
manner of the aforesaid sect, and also attended the assembly of
the aforesaid sect, without speaking to them when they met
together; and though he, the prisoner, has, by my lords of the
court as well as by divers ecclesiastical persons, been urged,
and repeatedly admonished, to forsake the aforementioned
reprobated sect, and to return to our mother, the holy church,
he nevertheless refuses to do it, persisting in his obstinacy
and stubbornness, so that he, the prisoner, according to what
has been mentioned, has committed crime against divine and
human majesty, as by said sect perturbing the common peace and
welfare of the country, according to the import of the decrees
of his majesty existing in regard to this; which
misdemeanors,</p>

</div><div id="878"> 

<p>for an example unto others; ought not to go unpunished;
therefore,my lords of the court, having heard the demand of my
lord the bailiff, and seen the confession of the prisoner, and
having had regard to his obstinacy and stubbornness, have
condemned said prisoner, and by these presents, do condemn him
to be executed with fire, according to the decrees of his royal
majesty, and declare ail his -property confiscated for the
benefit of his majesty aforesaid. Done in court, on the 26th of
June, A. D. 1571, in the presence of all the judges, by the
advice of Cornelis Jacobss Brouwer, and Hendrick Cornelis,
burgomasters; I being present as secretary. Subscribed.</p>

<p class="c5">W. PIETERSS.</p>

<h2>THE TWO TORTURINGS OF GERRIT CORNELISS, ACCORDING TO THE RECORD IN THE BOOK OF<br />
CRIMINAL SENTENCES AT AMSTERDAM</h2> 

<p>He was tortured twice, namely, on the 27th of April, and on
the 3rd of May, A. D. 1571, according to the sentence of the
judges, as appears from the record of the confession.</p>

<p>Thus extracted from the book of criminal sentences of the
city of Amsterdam, preserved in the archives there.</p>

<p class="c5">N. N.</p>

<h1>A LETTER FROM HENDRICK VERSTRALEN TO HIS 
WIFE, WRITTEN IN THE YEAR 1571, IN PRISON 
AT RIJPERMONDE, WHERE HE LAID DOWN 
HIS LIFE FOR THE NAME OF THE LORD</h1> 

<p>The abundant great grace of God, that comes to us from the
Father, through Christ His only Son; and the immeasurable
riches of the Holy Ghost, whereby we are now kept unto eternal
life, among this wicked and perverse generation, this only and
eternal God of all grace keep you, my dearest wife and sister
in the Lord, my flesh, my bone, the dearest among all creatures
on earth. For this I have confessed more than once before the
lords, if the whole world were mine, I would give it, if I
could keep my wife and children with a good conscience; but for
the Lord's sake I must now contrary to nature forsake
everything-the spirit must overcome the flesh. O my Janneken,
my lamb, how hard it is for me to part from you and the
children; Oh, how deep you are buried in my heart; which is now
a great conflict for me; may the Lord help me to gain the
victory, so that the crown of life may be prepared for me, with
all the elect saints of God; who have forsaken everything for
the Lord's sake. O my dear wife, my lamb, my love, I thank you
from the depths of my soul, for your consoling letter, which
you sent me; and may the Lord grant His eternal life to all
those that by counsel or deed lent their aid in the matter. The
letter removed a greater weight from my heart, than all the
riches on the face of the earth are worth. Oh, what a good
thing it is, to remember the prisoners; how welcome came this
Habakkuk to me, who fed mepoor prisoner in my soul, here in the
lion's den; for a little morsel that comes from without
strengthens me ten times more than what I have with me. Hist.
of the Drag. 33, etc.</p>

<p>O my dear wife and sister in the Lord, I pray you far the
Lord's sake, who am now bound for His sake, adhere to the
truth, as the church at Antwerp and Ghent stands. Keep with
them that truly fear God; and the God of all comfort will be
with you, yea, God and His holy church shall feed you, and my
young lambs, of this I have no doubt. If you continue in the
fear of the Lord, and cast all your care upon Him, though you
are now poor; my sister and beloved wife, you will have much
wealth, if you fear God and eschew sin, as I trust you will.
Tob. 4:21.</p>

<p>I further pray you; my dearest wife, take care as long as
you live, of my young lambs, my Susanneken, my Abrahamken, and
my Isaaken, that they may be brought up in the fear of God. Oh,
with what scalding tears do I pray to my God, to let them grow
up in His fear, or to take them to Him in their youth.</p>

<p>O my dearest love on earth, Janneken Verstralen, kiss all my
children once for me, and tell my Susanken, that it is her
father's wish, that she be obedient to her mother in the fear
of God; and learn to be diligent to help her dear mother, to
earn bread for her little brothers, and you my Janneken, my
love, remember me your imprisoned husband, and bound for the
eternal truth, and for the sake of the testimony of Jesus, in
your prayers. This I pray you and all God-fearing brethren and
sisters, to help us pray to God, that we may gain the victory
of a good fight, that God will now teach my fingers to war and
my arm to bend the bow of steel, so that by faith I may break
through a troop, and leap by my God over a wall (Ps. 18:34,
29); so that we may say with Paul: The fight is fought, the
course is finished, the crown of life is laid up for us. II
Tim. 4:8. Maeyken and I are determined to use such force in
'order to take the kingdom of God, that flesh and blood shall
remain on the posts and stakes. We are not permitted to stay
together; however we have been together three times, yet
through strategy; the first time, when the disputer came from
Ghent. Then all the lords came too, and I began to say to them
with what calamity they should be punished who now imbrued
their hands in the blood of the innocent. Then they cast down
their eyes; but a flatterer began to speak, saying, that I had
most gravely accused all the lords. In short, I felt that he
was the one who was to dispute with me; hence I finally feigned
as though I could not defend myself, and spoke pleasantly to
the lords, and requested that they should let Maeyken hear
it;"for I see, said I, that you are anxious to help me, and in
this wise you will have the trouble only once; if you help one
you help them both." They therefore consented to it; then we
began to defend ourselves, and it lasted until long in the
afternoon. After dinner we met again. but Maevken wag not</p>

</div><div id="879"> 

<p>allowed to come to me. We then began to have some very,
sharp words; hence they changed their tactics, and began to
speak pleasantly saying, whether I dared not do like Paul, and,
contrary to my views, circumcise Timothy, and shave my head;
yea, secretly he said, whether I dared not with Judith cut off
Holofernes' head, though it were not, the truth, that I should
do all that I should promise; whether it were not the same God,
and whether one might now not lie as well as then, for the sake
of some good end; for it is written, he said, "If it be possible, live peaceably with all men." Rom.
12:18. I requested time for consideration, whether I could do
it with truth and a good conscience. We then parted, and they
said they desired nothing else. They returned another time, and
asked to what conclusion I had come; and I constantly sought to
be with Maeyken; but it could not well be. I then said, "Let us
come together; I hope always to do what is possible." Then
Maeyken came tome, and I presented the matter to her as they
had done to me, whereupon she said, "How should this be? should
the dog return to his own vomit?" II Peter 2:22. I then told
them, that they should let me speak with Maeyken alone, and
they permitted it. I then told Maeyken, that no man living
should persuade me of this, that the priests' matters are
right,"they know it well," said I,"but they seek to be rid of
us; but we will live and die together." Thus we said that we
should consider the matter, with which they were satisfied.</p>

<p>At another time they took Maeyken alone, but had me come
too. When I came, and was there, I perceived that they showed
us great friendship and promised much to set us into the street
as free as we had ever been, for which they would pledge their
souls; so that I finally became frightened, fearing that I
might be led astray by their fair speeches. They also had more
hope of winning me, than Maeyken; hence I fell upon my knees,
and entreated them, not to trouble themselves any more with us;
for I have besought my God with many tears day and night, that
He would keep me in His truth; and hence I would live or die
with the Lord. Then Maeyken leaped up for joy, for she had
thought that I had given it up, since I had come in with a sad
countenance."Now I am glad," ~ she said,"for I thought, that I
should have to die alone." But when I perceived that Maeyken
had such thoughts concerning me, I fell upon my knees, and
said, "I am very sorry for this." Thus we shook hands, and
kissed each other, and rejoiced greatly together, but our
adversaries were greatly grieved. I would have written these
things more neatly, but I cannot make these writing materials
do good service.</p>

<p>Furthermore, my dearest wife, my lamb, my love, I inform
you, that I am little burdened in my conscience, the Lord be
forever praised for it; but all my sadness is caused by the
bitterness of our parting. But, my dear lamb, this I would like
to askof you, because you have such a good nature that you
could well live without a husband, that you henceforth stay
only with my children; for often great sorrow arises from
marrying again. And wherein I ever grieved you through my
weakness, I ask your forgiveness, for the sake of the Lord's
deep wounds and innocent death. Greet much all the God-fearing,
and the babes that are nourished at the breasts of Zion in my
name with the peace of the Lord. Serres, you broken bonehead,
and J. van G. help to care for my poor widow and little
orphans, knowing, that therein you will not serve man, but God.
I much greet H. C. M. and A. and L. and C. O how gladly I would
write neatly, had I good materials. Adieu, by flesh and blood;
kiss Susanneken for me. O adieu for me, adieu, adieu, my dear
wife. Pray our dear Lord for me for a blessed end.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER LETTER FROM HENDRICK VERSTRALEN TO HIS WIFE</h2> 

<p>O my dearest wife, my flesh, my bone, my dear friend, my
lamb, not on my heart, but in my heart, and henceforth my poor
widow, whom I must leave according to the pleasure, goodness,
will and counsel of God, who has deemed it well that I should
according to His pleasure lie in bonds here for His eternal
truth's sake, which, my dear wife and sister in the Lord, I
hope by the grace of God .to seal with my death, to pay now the
obedience which we owe to God, that is, the denying of
ourselves, that we may love nothing above Him, neither father,
nor mother, nor wife, nor child, nor our own life; or God
threatens us with His eternal judgment. He that loveth aught
more than me can not be my disciple, much less my son; and they
that are not sons are bastards, who shall have neither part nor
inheritance with God. Eph. 5:5. And this is the reason, my dear
wife, that, though you and my little children lie so deeply in
my heart, you must, against my nature, be cast out from it; for
you may not be an idol to me, nor I to you, as much as we love
our dear-bought souls. I Cor. 6:20. Hence know by this, my
dearest wife, that I will commend you and my little children to
the great, almighty, and eternal God, who is rich in mercy over
all them that fear and love Him, that through His goodness and
great power He will bring you to the eternal, glorious and
undefiled inheritance among all them that are sanctified. The
God of all comfort, and Father of all grace, who is called the
true Father in heaven or upon earth, the same grant you, my
dear wife, Janneken Verstralen, that through His unfathomable
mercy, and immeasurable goodness, and the riches of His grace,
may be strengthened by His Holy Spirit in the inner man, and
that Christ, His blessed Son, may dwell in your heart by faith
(Eph. 3:16, 17), that you, my love, may be clothed with the
cloak of righteousness and have the loins of your mind girt
about with the girdle of truth, and the bond of love (6:14;
Col. 3:14); yea, that the</p>

</div><div id="880"> 

<p>basket of grapes and the bundle of myrrh may hang between
both your breasts, in your heart, namely, Christ Jesus, whereby
you may be preserved from the pestilence that walketh in
darkness (Ps. 91:6), and thus shine with an eternal crown, as a
daughter born of royal seed, the living Word of God, and may
gain the victory of a good fight: may this be done to the
praise and glory of the almighty God, and to the salvation of
your soul. Amen.</p>

<p>This I, Hendrick Verstralen, your husband, prisoner in the
Lord for the eternal truth's sake and the testimony of Christ,
send to you, my beloved wife and sister in the Lord, as a
salutation and good wish of my heart, and as my last adieu.
Adieu my dearest on earth; adieu, sister in the Lord. Oh,
strong is the truth; it conquers all things. I Esd. 4:35. O my
own rib, who are taken out of the middle of my body, how should
I not love you, you my wife, who loves my soul more than my
body, as I understand from your letter, which is a great joy to
me, and a perpetual comfort; I have read it with many tears. I
thank you much, my lamb, for your earnest solicitude for me. I
further pray you, my dear wife, whom I have wedded honorably
before God and His church, now that our parting is at hand help
us and all the God-fearing to pray and supplicate to God for a
little while yet, until Maeyken, our dear sister, and I your
husband, who now are still in our greatest conflict, under the
bloody banner which Christ, the author of faith, and chief
Captain, has borne Himself in the midst of His saints, that
with Him, we may through our death, overcome our enemies, with
God nail our flag to the mast, and with peace and rest enter
into our chambers (Isaiah 26:20), and wait for the coming of
our Lord, who shall through His grace raise us up from the
earth unto life eternal. And, my dear lamb, my flesh, my blood,
be patient in your tribulation; continue now with Judith and
Anna the prophetess instant in prayer, serving your God day and
night, in the house of the Lord, which is His church. See, my
dear wife, I hope that you will do according to Paul's advice
(I Cor. 7:32), now that you are unmarried; that you will serve
the Lord unhindered, and seek to please Him, and to be holy in
soul and body. Hearken, my wife, my dearest love on earth,
follow my advice for the Lord's sake; go and sell all that you
can spare, which is little, and live as plainly as possible,
for a widow, can get along with very little; and seek an
honorble, quiet girl that does not keep company with youthful
companions; and flee youthful lusts, and do the best with my
little children. The Lord shall care for you; He who gives the
wild ass his food in the wilderness, when he cries for thirst,
and who feeds the young ravens that cry unto God, as David says
(Psalm 147:9), will also feed you, my dear lamb, when you, my
widow, my chosen lamb, shall with my young orphans cry to God.
Though your tears fall here upon earth, they shall not cease
until they penetrate the clouds and appear before God. Then
shall you find consolation, asDavid says, "The righteous cry,
and the Lord heareth, and delivereth them out of all their
troubles; yea, the angel of the Lord. encampeth round about
them that fear him from the heart." Ps. 34:17, 7.</p>

<p>O my dear wife, think of the words of Paul: The time is
short; I would fain spare you; they that are married must be as
though they were not. I Cor. 7:29. Thus, my dear sister in the
Lord, Janneken Verstralen, the end of all things is now at
hand, says Peter; the heavens shall be rolled together, and
pass away as smoke, and the elements shall melt with fervent
heat. I Pet. 4:7; Rev. 6:14; II Pet. 3:10. O what manner of
person ought you then to be in all holy and chaste
conversation. II Pet. 3:11. O my dear wife these words have
sometimes terrified me on account of my wicked, evildesiring
flesh; with which I am compassed about; but I consoled myself
with this, that God by chastisement should refine me in the
'fire of affliction, and thus be gracious unto me; for I have
loved His truth, though weakness cleaved to me. Hence I will
now say with the prophet Micah, "I will bear the indignation of
the Lord, because I have sinned against him." Micah 7:9. And
with Sirach, "I will rather fall into the hands of the Lord,
than into the hands of men; for his mercy is as great as he
himself is." Sir. 2:18. He forgives sin, and helps in distress.
Ps. 32:5. Hence, my dear wife, be patient in the tribulation
that is upon us both; confess with Judith; that our punishment
is less than our sins. Judith 8:27. And He helps in distress;
for he that humbles himself before the Lord, and confesses and
forsakes his sins, shall obtain mercy; but he that covers them
shall not prosper. Prov. 28:13. But if we confess our sins to
the Lord, it is God that forgives them,;, for we have a free
and open. fountain for sin and uncleanness, as Zechariah says,
that is, Christ Jesus, who has bought us with His precious
blood; for the blood of our dear Lord Jesus Christ cleanses us
from all our sins. See, my dearest wife, though now the
sufferings of Christ abound in us, so our consolation much more
abounds by Christ, that through His innocent death we shall
have eternal life, if we continue steadfast in the fear of God
unto the end, as I hope through the grace of God to do. And I
also pray you, my Janneken Verstralen, my lamb, my love, that
you will do so, and will remain an honorable widow, in prayer
and supplication to God (I Tim. 5:5) , and in holiness, without
which no one shall see the Lord (Heb. 12:14); till you also are
taken away by the Lord. O my dearest love on earth, [in] my
fatherly heart, yours and my little children's, I wish you much
good according to the soul.- There are three of my little lambs
with the Lord, and I hope through God's grace soon to be the
fourth. O my dear wife, that I might, through the grace and
power of God, be burnt alive twice in a pitch barrel, for you
four that must remain behind, and you should now go with me to
the Lord into rest! What joy would it be to my fatherly heart,
if I were sure.</p>

</div><div id="881"> 

<p>of the salvation of you all. Written with many scalding
tears. This I pray you, my dearest wife, that you will remain
an honorable and quiet widow. Do not take this amiss from me;
true, it is my advice, but therefore no command; but I seek it
for the greater assurance of your salvation.</p>

<p>Oh, how often has this happened, that widows whose husbands
went before so valiantly, and so courageously gave their lives
for the truth, by marrying again, have subjected themselves to
many sorrows, some of them fallen into perdition, and some of
them gone through life in great sorrow, sighing over those whom
they now have. Hence, my dear lamb, I repeat it, think of the
words of the apostle, "The time is short; I would fain spare
you. For he would fain have wished, that all men had been even
as he himself, seeing that through marriage much trouble comes
into the flesh." I Cor. 7:28, 29, 7. However, everyone has his
particular gift, the one this, the other that; but do what you
will, only that it be done in the Lord. v. 39. But I hope and
trust in my God, that He will firmly keep you together with my
three lambs, and preserve you, that you may not be taken; and
not suffer you, my dearest wife, to be tempted above that you
are.able; for God knoweth how to deliver the godly out of
temptation, but to reserve the wicked and ungodly unto the day
of judgment to be punished. I Cor. 10:13; II Pet. 2:9.</p>

<p>Hence my dear lamb, I will commend you to the Lord, our
God and helper in distress, and further to His holy church; may
they together open their fatherly heart over you, my poor widow
and young orphans. I further desire, my dear wife, that
wherever it is convenient you greet the Godfearing brethren and
sisters much in my name with the peace of the Lord; and tell
them, that I greatly desire of them all, that they remember us
poor prisoners as their fellow brethren, and will help pray and
supplicate to God, that we may wage the Lord's war, and [that
He may] also help us to gain the victory, so that we may finish
it to His praise and to our salvation; and bid them all adieu
in our name, if perhaps I can write no more. And to you, my
dear wife, my flesh and my blood, I will also say adieu; adieu,
my helper in distress; adieu, my faithful friend on earth. The
Lord be praised, that gave you to me; you, my lamb, who have
always comforted me in my tribulation. Adieu, my Susanneken, my
Abrahamken, my Isaaken; adieu, Janneken; my dearest love upon
earth, who have borne me six children, with three of whom I
hope soon to be at rest.</p>

<p>The almighty God, to whom nothing is impossible, but whose
power is equal to everything, keep you, my chosen wife, with
the other three innocent lambs, unto His eternal life. O my
lamb, my Janneken Verstralen, may the almighty God grant us, my
love, that we may with our children come to the Lord, to
rejoice together before the throne of the Lamb and the Majesty
of our God. Amen.</p>

<p class="c21">May God keep you, my dear wife, in the
simplicity of doves, the innocence of children, and the
prudence of serpents, and bring you to His eternal inheritance.
I commend you to the Lord, and to the rich Word of His grace.
By me, your husband, Hendrick Verstralen, bound for the eternal
truth, at Rijpermonde, with fetters on my legs.</p>

<p>Maeyken greets you and all the God-fearing much with the
peace of the Lord. Oh, greet the household at D. much in our
name; I very affectionately desire to ask the old mother and
her daughters, that they immediately gird up their loins with
the girdle of truth, and put on the shoes of the Gospel, to
enter into the camp of God, to the church, where now the Lord's
war is waged. Come immediately, my dear old mother, with your
young daughters, to bear the baggage of the Captain of our
faith, namely, the knapsack of love, in which is the helmet of
salvation, with a beautiful plume called faith and firm trust.
Cover them with the mantle of righteousness, so that the
beautiful helmet of salvation may not rust, and the plume not
become soiled, that is, that your faith and trust towards God
may not fail, and.you remain behind with the fainthearted and
fearful. Though you see that all the tempests, storms and heavy
rains fall upon the righteous, remember, my dear lamb, that all
the God-fearing must have themselves enlisted, and become
soldiers under the bloody banner which Christ Jesus our chief
Captain has borne in the midst of His saints, and under whose
banner I now stand by the grace of God, and hope to fight
valiantly together with Him, and to strive lawfully, as long as
I can stand on my feet, and there is breath in me.</p>

<p>Herewith I will bid you adieu, my dear friends D. and P.,
and the daughters, and commend you to God, and to the Word of
His grace, hoping that you will follow. Adieu, my dear friends,
at whose table I ate bread with joy for the last time, and we
sang a hymn to the honour of God. Adieu, my dear friends, in
hope that we shall eat bread together in the kingdom of God,
and drink the oil of joy and the new wine.</p>

<p>By me Hendrick Verstralen, in bonds for the testimony of the
truth, on Palm Sunday, A. D. 1571. HENDRICK VERSTRALEN.</p>

<h2>A LETTER FROM HENDRICK VERSTRALEN, WRITTEN<br />
TO HIS BRETHREN AND SISTERS</h2> 

<p>We prisoners and bound in the Lord for the eternal truth's
sake, Hendrick Verstralen and Maeyken Deynoots, your very weak
brother and sister in the Lord, wish our very dear and
affectionately beloved brethren and sisters, who in the Lord
stand in like faith with us, and are gone out from Babylon, no
more to touch the unclean thing, nor to be yoked together any
more with unbelievers, but are come unto Jerusalem, into the
church of the living God, there to serve the Lord your God,
around the slaughter house, where some of you are still spared,
as the prophet Jeremiah says (Jer. 11:19), to be</p>

</div><div id="882"> 

<p>baptized; much consolation, gladness and joy in all your
hearts, from God our heavenly Father, and this through Jesus
Christ His only, eternal begotten Son, full of grace and truth,
through this our High Priest and mercy seat, who offered
Himself to God His Father for us, on the tree of the cross,
that through His death He might prepare us the entrance to
eternal life. Through this innocent and spotless Lamb, that
took away our sins, we bow the knee of our heart day and night
before God our heavenly Father, that He would spread His peace
among you as a river, and confirm you, my dear brethren and
sisters in the Lord, with His Holy Spirit, that you may be
strengthened in the inner man, and keep the unity of the Spirit
in the bond of peace and love (Eph. 4:3), so that we, my dear
brethren and sisters, who are bought and redeemed with the
precious blood of our Lord Jesus Christ, may together serve the
Lord in holiness and righteousness acceptably before Him, as
long as we are in this tabernacle. Amen.</p>

<p>O thou camp of the Lord, thou city of the living God, may
the Lord set watchmen everywhere on thy walls, that never hold
their peace day nor night (Isa. 62:6); but that thy teachers
may, as David says, be filled with much blessing, and gain one
victory after another, so that the vineyard of the Lord may be
planted, and thou Jerusalem be built, thou temple of the Lord,
though in a sorrowful time. Let every one gird his sword to his
side, and let him build with the one hand, and with the other
let him hold the spear, so that the enemies who would prevent
our working may be repelled, so that Zion alone may be shown
prepared. my dear brethren and sisters, we wish you from God,
that you may be built together a spiritual house and habitation
of God; that God's law may be written in all your hearts, and
His commandment be in your mind, and you thus remain sons and
daughters of God in whom He may dwell and walk: that He would
keep you, that you will never touch the unclean thing, but may
approve yourselves in all things as ministers of God, so that
the name of the Lord may be praised from the rising of the sun
to the going down of the same. O brethren and sisters, that
your light may arise as the morning star, and you remain a
royal priesthood, a holy nation, and a peculiar people, so that
you, dear brethren and sisters, may everywhere lift up holy
hands to God, and offer up to Him ..ie fruit of your lips,
spiritual sacrifices, so that the vial of the Lord may be
filled with incense from the prayers of the saints. I Tim. 2:8;
Heb. 13:15; Rev. 5:8. O thou bride of the Lamb, who from love
of your Bridegroom Christ must be zealous unto death, and bring
forth the fruits of righteousness with many sorrows and pains,
and be sick of love to Him; may the Lord our God lay His left
hand under your head, and embrace you with His right hand
(Cant. 2:6), thou Eve regenerated by Christ your husband
through the incorruptible seed of the living Word of God
nroceeditw from-the fatherlv heart _ n thou beautiful daughter
of the almighty Father, who are now presented to His Son Jesus,
the Lord from heaven, and through faith in Him shalt have
eternal life; may the eternal, almighty Father richly pour out
upon you His blessing and the power of the Holy Ghost, and make
you fruitful and fit for every good work, so that you may win
His Son Jesus many sons and daughters, that His winepress may
soon be filled through the number of His saints (Rev. 6:11),
and you may thus the sooner see the destruction of our enemies,
who are innumerably many, and have bent our back, and walk over
us as over a street, and reward us evil for good, because they
cannot- build with us on the spiritual house of the Lord,
because they are uncircumcised of heart and carnally minded.
Against these our enemies, may God arm us and you, my dear
brethren and sisters in the Lord, with the armor of
righteousness, [and grant] that we may be shod with the Gospel
of peace, and our loins be girt about with truth, always having
the two edged sword of the Spirit at our side, thus preserving
our helmet of salvation with the shield of faith, guarding the
knapsack of love, and thus following the Captain of our faith,
as Christian soldiers, boldly waging the war of the Lord, under
the bloody banner of Christ; so that we, our dear brethren and
sisters, may through the grace of God gain the victory of a
good fight in godly conflict, and obtain the crown of eternal
life. Amen.</p>

<p>We prisoners in the Lord, and bound for the eternal truth's
sake and the testimony of Jesus, Maeyken Deynoots, and Hendrick
Verstralen, herewith greet all our brethren and sisters in the
Lord, and send you this brief letter from the depth of our
heart, as our last adieu; hereby taking affectionate leave from
all dear brethren and sisters, especially those of you who are
known to us, and have shown us much good by your consoling
'exhortations, in our tribulation, where we are imprisoned for
the eternal truth's sake. Hence we again entreat all you
beloved who shall see our letter, or hear it read, before we
are out of the flesh, that you will help us heartily to beseech
the Lord, that we may overcome even unto death, to the praise
and glory of the almighty God, and to our salvation, and to
your boast in the day of Christ. Phil. 2:16. Adieu, all my dear
brethren and sisters. Adieu, all that love the Lord and His
appearing. Adieu, H. P. H. de R. and D. P. and Adam and his
wife, and B. P. and S. and J. van H., our faithful helpers in
distress. Adieu, K. and L. B. and M. S. and G. and her sister
Janneken. Dear friends, lay it to heart to pray to God for us,
for we ask it of you with tears. H. de R., I pray you greet
much in my name with the peace of the Lord, for an adieu, L. de
C., and your servant maid and your friend C., and all my dear
brethren. Oh, that God would grant that the two Abrahams might
each make a Sarah out of their rib; this is my heart's wish.
Bid them adieu too, Grietjen and Judith. Adieu T. de S. and
your wife. our L. S. G.</p>

</div><div id="883"> 

<p>as I may boldly call you; my dear brother, my dear friend,
adieu; however, I hope to remember you yet, if it is possible.
Acquit yourself valiantly.</p>

<p>Written on St. Georges day, A. D. 1571.</p>

<h2>A LETTER WHICH MAEYKEN DEYNOOTS WROTE TO<br />
HER BRETHREN AND SISTERS, WHILE IMPRIS<br />
ONED, IN THE YEAR 1571, AT RIJPERMONDE,<br />
WHERE SHE ALSO HAD TO LAY DOWN HER<br />
LIFE FOR THE TRUTH'S SAKE</h2> 

<p>The abundant grace and mercy of God our heavenly Father,
through His only, eternally begotten Son, our Lord Jesus
Christ, who offered up Himself for us to God His heavenly
Father, as a propitiation for our sins, that He might deliver
us from the future wrath that shall come upon all them that
have not obeyed the Gospel of our Lord Jesus Christ, who shall
be punished with everlasting destruction (II Thess. 1:8); but
may wisdom, power, and the consolation of the Holy Ghost, which
proceeds from both the Father and the Son, this only eternal
and almighty God, by whom every good and perfect gift is given,
always abide with us and you, my dear brethren and sisters, so
that He may through grace make us all together fit through
Himself, that we may be found worthy in the day of His coming.
Amen. Luke 21:36.</p>

<p>My affectionately beloved brethren and sisters in the Lord,
I wish you from the depth of my heart, for an adieu, that you
may always prosper in soul and body. I Maeyken, your weak
sister in the Lord, thank you from the very depth of my heart
for the great love that you are showing us; I wish before God,
that the same may also be done to you in distress, my dear
brethren and sisters in the Lord. Excuse me, that I do not
write more with my own hand; for I am very unskilled therein.
However, I did not deem it to be necessary; for Hendrick, our
dear brother, my fellow prisoner in the Lord, has done it so
well for us both; I wish you the same before God, my dear
brethren and sisters in the Lord. Let it seem to you as though
I had written it; my heart's wish is, that we may seal it with
our blood, to the praise and glory of the holy name of the
Lord, and to the salvation of our souls. With my own hand I bid
adieu to all my dear brethren and sisters in the Lord. Adieu;
always adhere valiantly to the eternal truth. Adieu. Pray the
Lord for us; I pray day and night for you in my weakness.
Adieu, G. C. N. T. and your wives. Adieu, B. J. B. P., my dear
sisters. Adieu, Andries M. Adieu, adieu; receive this in good
part.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER LETTER FROM MAEYKEN DEYNOOTS, TO<br />
HER BROTHER AND SISTER</h2> 

<p>I prisoner of the Lord salute you from the inmost of my
heart, my very dear and affectionately beloved brother and
sister J. and Andries who are now in great tribulation and
sorrow on account of the sad parting. Oh, be patient in all
your tribulation, continuing instant in prayer, and rejoicingin
hope, which maketh not ashamed, my dear brother and sister in
the Lord. Uh, it is a good thing to be patient, and wait for
the help of the Lord; for he that fears God is comforted after
temptation, and after chastisement he finds favor. The Lord
does hide His face for a moment, but with everlasting kindness
will He have mercy on us. Isa. 54:8. Hence, my dear sister
Janneken, console yourself with the Lord's holy Word; though
you are now as it were a forsaken and heartstricken wife, it is
but a little while, and your sorrow shall be turned into
everlasting joy; for thy maker is thine husband; the Lord of
hosts is His name; and thy Redeemer the Holy One of Israel; the
God of the whole earth shall He be called, verse 5. O you
warrioress of God, contend valiantly against your flesh and
blood, and continue steadfast unto death, and there shall be
given you the crown of eternal life, with full joy, which no
man shall take from you. Andries, my dear brother, that you
parted from us with great sorrow, and that you desire to be
with us, this you must commit to the Lord, for everything must
have its due time. They did not lack the power, when they said
to me, "Woman, you must come with us." I said, "In the name of
the Lord." They greatly desired you. I Said, "If it were the
Lord's will, you would get him." I went again very willingly;
then I saluted our dear brethren with the kiss of peace, since
love impelled me to it. I believe my brother and fellow
prisoner has informed you how it further went, and of the
proceedings with us, as far as known to him; I cannot write
anything concerning it, for want of paper. My dear brother and
sister, I thank you heartily for your good exhortation,
faithful warning, and sweet consolation, and wish before God,
that the same may be done to you in your distress. I read it
with many tears, and time and again thanked the Lord, who
through His great grace remembers His poor, weak, imprisoned
and bound children, and does not forget them. Comfort and
admonish one another with the same words, nay dear brother and
sister in the Lord, and kiss one another once for me; I hope to
do as you said. Herewith I will commend you to the Lord, and to
the comforting Word of His grace, and herewith bid adieu to all
dear brethren and sisters in the Lord; I know of no one that is
known to me, whether he be far or near, of whom I do not think.
Adieu with an inward holy kiss of love and peace. Adieu, and
pray the Lord for us; I pray day and night for you. Adieu, my
dear brethren and sisters. Adieu, adieu, adieu, with tears:
adieu, keep firmly on, till you are taken hence. This adieu I
write to you all. Excuse this simple letter.</p>

<p>Written by me your weak sister in the Lord, in the castle of
Rijpermonde where I am imprisoned and bound with iron chains or
fetters, for the eternal truth's sake. I long for the day when
I shall offer up my sacrifice; however, I hope to wait for it
with patience. A. D. 1571.</p>

<p class="c5">MAEYKEN DEYNOOTS</p>

<h1>ADRIAEN JANSS HOEDEMAECKER, AND JELIS DE 
BACKER, BOTH BURNT ALIVE AT THE SAME STAKE, 
FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS, IN RIJSSEL, 
A. D. 1570</h1> 
</div><div id="884"> 

<h2>THREE LETTERS OF ADRIAEN 
JANSS. HOEDEMAECKER, WRITTEN IN 
PRISON AT RIJSSEL</h2>
<h2>The first letter from Adriaen Janss
Hoedemaecker, to his wife</h2> 
<br />
<p>The love of God the Father, the grace of our Lord Jesus
Christ, and the communion of the Holy Ghost, be with you my
dear wife and sister in the Lord, now and forever; this I wish
you from the depth of my heart as an affectionate salutation.
Amen. After this good wish of my heart and Christian
salutation, let me inform you, my dear and in God beloved wife
how it still stands with me, that I am still well content and
of good cheer, the Lord be praised for His grace which He shows
me, and I hope by His grace, that He will help and keep me unto
the end, since with Jeremiah, I have committed to Him my cause
against my adversaries, who are set against me and against the
Lord, since I am imprisoned for the name of the Lord, because
with the prodigal son, I have arisen to confess my guilt before
my God, against whom I have sinned and transgressed, who
graciously received me, when I sought and entreated Him with
tears. And for this reason they persecute and gainsay us,
because we have received mercy from God, as the Lord has spoken
and declared, saying, "If ye were of the world, the world would
love you, but because I have chosen you out of the world,
therefore the world hateth you." John 15:19. Mark, my dear
wife, the words of our Lord, what is the reason that we are
hated; so that in the time of hatred and persecution we may
comfort ourselves with the grace of the Lord, as also the
apostle Peter testifies, saying, "Because we no longer run with
them to that excess of riot, as are lasciviousness, lusts,
excess of wine, revelings, banquetings, and abominable
idolatries." I Peter 4:3, 4. Therefore does the world speak
evil of you-: therefore say they as is written in the Book of
Wisdom, "Let us lie in wait for the righteous; for his life is
not like other men's, his ways are of an other fashion; he
declares our ways to be sin, and avoids us like filth;
therefore he is grievous unto us; we will torment and examine
him with despitefulness, that we may,know his meekness, and
prove his patience, and let us condemn him with the most
shameful death." Wisd. 2:12. This has ever been the reason: why
the righteous have been evil spoken of, envied, persecuted,
despoiled of their goods, cast into prisons and bonds, drowned,
beheaded, and burned, as we may first read concerning Abel, as
John testifies with these words, "Let us love one another, not
as Cain, who was of that wicked one. and slew his brother. And
wherefore slew he him? Because his own works were evil, and his
brother's righteous." I John 3:12. Hence the apostle says, 
"Marvel not, my brethren, if the world hate you."v. 13.
Christ declared to the Jews, "Many good works have I shewed you
from my Father; for which of these do ye stone me?" John 10:32.
Hence, my dear, beloved wife, it will not fail, as the apostle
says, that all who will live godly in Christ Jesus will have to
suffer persecution; for evil men and seducers always wax worse
and worse, deceiving, and being deceived. II Tim. 3:12, 13.
Hence, the righteous may always prepare themselves for
suffering and tribulation; for they are led forth unto death as
sheep for the slaughter; we that live are constantly delivered
unto death for Jesus' sake, and are always in peril to die
every day for our glorying which we have in Christ Jesus our
Lord. We may therefore well prepare ourselves for suffering,
even as the Lord told His apostles, "In the world ye shall have
tribulation; yea, the World shall rejoice, but ye shall weep
and be sorrowful; for a woman that is in travail hath sorrow,
because her hour is come." John 16:33. Thus we must also bring
forth Christ with sorrow in this world. Therefore the apostles
strengthened and encouraged the churches, that they must with
tribulation and suffering enter into the kingdom of God, even
as our head Christ went before, as is written concerning Him in
the prophets. For the kingdom of God suffereth violence, and
the violent take it by force (Matt, 11:12), as I now experience
myself; for we did indeed formerly have some temptations such
as are common to man, but now we must strive unto blood. I Cor.
10:13; Heb. 12:4. For I may now well say with the apostle, that
I bear in my body the marks of the Lord. Gal. 6:17. For they
have scourged me three times, until the blood flowed, and this
that I should betray my fellow brethren; but the Lord by His
grace kept my lips. I was suspended by my hands so that I did
not touch the ground. Yea, my dear beloved wife, I was seized
with great fear so that I could hardly stand it, when they
scourged me the third time; hence I thought of the words of the
apostle who says, "The Lord will not suffer you to be tempted
above that ye are able." I Cor. 10:13. Then they desisted
though they threatened to torture me; and they said that they
would rend my limbs asunder, or I should tell them who had
associated with me, and who were my fellow brethren; but the
Lord did not let them have their will this time; what they will
do yet, the Lord knows, for to Him every thing is known.</p>

<p>My dear and in God beloved wife, faint not at my
tribulation, which ought to be a comfort to you, that the Lord
has called me hereunto, that He wants to magnify His name by
me, and that I am counted worthy to suffer shame for His name,
and to seal His Word with my blood before this wicked and
adulterous generation. I hope to go before you in truth, and
before all my dear brethren and sisters who still walk in like
peril; that they may take an example from me, not in anywise to
forsake the Lord in tribulation, but firmly to cleave to Him,
who (though He is great), will not forsake His</p>

</div><div id="885"> 

<p>own in distress who trust in Him, and serve Him in truth;
for His eyes are upon the righteous, and His ears are open unto
their cry, yea, the Lord is the strength of the righteous in
the time of trouble. Psalm 34:15; 37:49.</p>

<p>Herewith I will commend my dear and in God beloved wife to
the Lord, who is able to keep your treasure, and to give you an
inheritance among all them which are sanctified. Acts 20:32.
Adieu, my dear wife, whom I love in truth, adieu. For I suspect
that the parting is close at hand; for I wait from day to day
for the redemption of my body, and to enter into godly rest to
my fellow brethren that were also slain for the truth. Rev.
6:11.</p>

<p>Greet the brethren and sisters in my name with the peace of
the Lord.</p>

<p>Written in my bonds, by me,</p>

<p class="c5">ADRIAEN JANSS,</p>

<p class="c5">Unworthy prisoner in the Lord.</p>

<h2>The second letter from Adriaen Janss Hoedemaecker to his wife</h2>

<p>I, Adriaen Janns, imprisoned at Rijssel for the name of our
Lord, and the testimony of my conscience, wish my dear and in
God beloved wife, much grace, mercy and peace, from God the
heavenly Father, who is the true Father in heaven and earth;
that He would grant you to be strengthened with might by His
Spirit, and Christ to dwell, in your hearts, and to be rooted
in through love. Eph. 3:14. This I wish you, together with the
consolation of the Holy Spirit, as a Christian salutation and
affectionate adieu.</p>

<p>Furthermore, after all proper and Christian salutation, I
hereby inform you my dear wife in the Lord, that J am well
content, and have a good conscience, the Lord be praised
forever for His grace, who has kept me in His grace until this
hour, and I hope that through His grace He will keep me unto
the end, according to His promise, for He says, "Though a mother forsake her child, yet will I not forsake
thee." Isa. 49:15. Yea, the Lord says, "I will not leave you
comfortless." Herewith, my dear wife, I comfort myself when I
am tempted. I further cannot conceal from my dear wife the many
tears which I shed when I think of your sorrow, which I presume
you have on my account, because we must now give up our
Christian fellowship which we have had together by faith. Yes,
my dear and beloved wife in the Lord, to every thing, says
Solomon, there is a time, "A time to meet, and a time to part."
Eccl. 3:1. Hence my dear wife in the Lord, what more godly
parting can there be than for the name of the Lord; and though
we now must part, I hope that I shall go before you, and that
you will also follow to that place where there will be no more
parting, for there we shall ever be with the Lord. I Thess.
4:17. Herewith you may comfort yourself, even as the apostle
Paul comforted the church at Thessalonica. I further beseech
and exhort you by the mercies of God, that you take heed unto
the vocation in which the Lordhas called you, and that you walk
as you have received the Lord, with all humility and meekness,
and walk in the love of God, and of your neighbor, Eph. 4:1;
Col. 2:6. Always remember the poor saints where you live; give
according to what the Lord has bestowed upon you; continue also
in prayer day and night: adhere firmly to the doctrine of
Christ, and whatsoever you have heard and received let it abide
in you; and the God of love and peace shall be with you. II
Corinthians 12:11. And remember me as long as I am here; I hope
not to forget you as long as I am in this tabernacle, with my
prayers to God. Though with my body I am absent from you I am
nevertheless present with the spirit and remember you with
tears.</p>

<p>Herewith adieu, my dear wife in the Lord, adieu, till we get
in the kingdom of God to our heavenly Father. Written with
tears by me,</p>

<p class="c5">ADRIAEN JANSS.</p>

<p>Greet the friends much in my name, especially my S. J. I
would write more, but there is no good opportunity here for
writing. Written to my dear wife.</p>

<h2>The third letter from Adriaen Janss
Hoedemaecker</h2>
<p><strong><i>written to the brethren and sisters</i></strong></p>

<p>I, Adriaen Janss, imprisoned at Rijssel for the name of the
Lord and the testimony of my conscience, wish my cordially
beloved brethren and sisters, my companions of the faith in the
kingdom of God, and in the patience of our. Lord Jesus Christ,
much grace, mercy and peace rom God the heavenly Father, who is
the true Father of all mercies, and the God of all comfort, who
comforts us in all our tribulation; and from Jesus Christ our
Lord, Redeemer and Saviour, who delivered us from this present,
proud world, according to the will of God His Father; together
with the power and consolation of the Holy Ghost, and a
steadfast mind unto the end of your life. This I wish you as a
Christian salutation in the Lord, and as an affectionate
adieu.</p>

<p>Furthermore, after all proper and Christian salutation, my
dear and in God beloved brethren and sisters in the Lord, I
cannot forbear, because of the fellowship which we through the
Gospel had together in the Lord, to write you briefly, for the
comfort and joy of your heart, concerning the grace which I
have received from God, so that I am of good cheer and well
content (the Lord be praised for the grace He shows me), so
that I hope by His grace, that He will make my cause terminate
to His praise, for which I daily pray Him. For I desire nothing
else than that His name might be magnified by my weak members,
and ask my dear brethren and sisters in the Lord, with me to
beseech God, so to strengthen me, that I may triumph in Christ
Jesus our Lord; I hope that He will hear your prayer and mine.
For the prophet David says, "The Lord will fulfill the desire of
them that fear him; he will also hear their cry and will save
them." Ps. 145:19. Since I desire noth-</p>

</div><div id="886"> 

<p>ing but what tends to His praise, I hope that He will hear
us. I trust I shall not forget you in my prayers to God, but to
remember you, even as behooves the members of the body in
Christ; and as I, when I was still with you, served you with
the little gift which I received from God, so I must also
exhort you yet in my imprisonment, and say with the apostle, "I
the prisoner of the Lord beseech you that ye walk worthy of the
vocation wherewith ye are called of God, with all lowliness and
meekness, with longsuffering, forbearing one another in
love; endeavoring to keep the unity of the Spirit in the bond
of peace." Ephesians 4:1-3. Yea, as ye have received Christ
Jesus the Lord, so walk ye in Him, rooted and built up in Him
(Col. 2:6, 7); and always remember the former days, in which ye
were illuminated (Heb. 10:32), and what promises you made to
the Lord, when you entered into covenant with Him, so that you
should serve the Lord in holiness and righteousness all the
days of your life. Hence, my dear brethren and sisters, walk
faithfully before your God, who called you in His grace out of
darkness into His marvelous light, who has received you as sons
and daughters, enlightened you with His Holy Spirit, and
promised you His kingdom.</p>

<p>Hence I repeat it, walk worthy of your vocation, in the love
of God and your neighbor; love one another, as behooves
brethren and sisters, and let not your hearts be overcharged
with the cares of this life (Luke 21:34), that your hearts do
not become alienated; for through many cares the heart becomes
estranged from God. Therefore my dear brethren and sisters in
the Lord, I say with Christ, "Watch, and pray day and night to God, and be like unto men
that wait for their lord; that, when he knocks, they may open
unto him immediately. Oh, how blessed are those servants whom
the Lord shall find thus watching: they shall enter in with him
into the kingdom of God, and possess all things." Luke 12:36,
37. Herewith I will commend my dear brethren and sisters to the
Lord, who is able to keep your treasure, and to give you an
inheritance among all them which are sanctified. Adieu my dear
brethren and sisters in the Lord, adieu, till we get into the
kingdom of God. It is very inconvenient here for writing.</p>

<p>Written by me, imprisoned for the true testimony of our Lord
Jesus Christ.</p>

<p class="c5">ADRIAEN JANSS HOEDEMAECKER.</p>

<br />

<h1>TWELVE CHRISTIANS AT DEVENTER: YDSE GAUKES, 
DIRCK VAN WESEL, WITH ANNEKEN AND JAN 
NEKEN, THEIR WIVES; HARMEN THE DYER, 
BRUYN, ANTHONIS THE WEAVER, CLAES OP 
REYDER, LIJSBET AND CATHARINA SOM ERHUYS, LIJNTGEN JORIS, AND TRIJNTGEN HER DAUGHTER, A. D. 1571</h1> 

<p>In the year 1571, on the 11th of March, in the night, the
Spaniards at Deventer (having held a tournament during the day)
went out with swords,halberds, guns, and many other implements,
to apprehend the sheep of Christ. They went through many
houses, searching in some streets from house to house; and all
whom they could find they apprehended, and fettered and ironed
them, saying, "O you heretical dogs, because you deny the Roman
Catholic faith you will have to die." For a few days the gates
were closed, and there was read by the sound of the town bell,
the proclamation, that no one should conceal any, and if any
one should know of any that were concealed, that he should
report them. But this order was not obeyed; for many were
concealed, who secretly fled, and left their goods for a spoil.
In all there were apprehended twelve, namely, Ydse Gaukes,
Dirck van Wesel, with Anneken and Janneken, their wives; Harmen
the dyer, Bruyn, and Anthonis the weaver, Claes Opreyder, Li j
sbet and Catharina Somerhuys, Lijntgen Joris, and Trijntgen her
daughter; all of whom at first when they were apprehended, were
valiant, and confessed their faith; but some were greatly
afraid according to the flesh, and abandoned the faith even
before they were tortured. (In the torture they were drawn up,
their hands tied behind their back and heavy weights of iron,
or cannon balls, suspended to their feet). Several others did
indeed remain valiant in the torture, but subsequently also
apostatized from the faith; and four remained valiant
throughout.</p>

<p>Thus it happened that they were frequently visited, and that
they (who had denied the faith with the mouth) were very
sorrowful, and promised and said, that if the Lord should grant
them grace so that they should get out, they would return to
the truth. And when on the 20th of May (when they offered up
their sacrifice on the 25th) a friend came to them, they asked
very closely what news he brought. The friend replied, that the
news was bad; he feared that they all should have to die; in
short, much was said, and the friend remarked, "I love you, so
much that I would you were all out of all this, and that I
could be imprisoned in your place;" so that the prisoners
became very sorrowful, and wept most bitterly, and said to the
friend, "It is best that you go, on account of the
Spaniards."</p>

<p>Thus it came to pass on the 24th of May, in the evening,
that monks came to them, to speak with them, that they should
prepare themselves, since they were to die the next day. The
monks went away at twelve o'clock in the night, but returned at
four o'clock in the morning. There were two men, Dirck van
Wesel and Harmen the dyer; and four women, Dirck van Wesel's
wife, Ydse Gaukes' wife, and Somerhuys' two daughters, Lijsbet
and Catharina; who did not hearken to the monks, but, according
to all that could be seen and heard, cleaved to the eternal
truth. First, when they came out of the prison, with a very
joyful countenance and smiling, they, bowing their heads, said
adieu to a friend whom they knew well, and who had visited them
in prison; and he smiled to them in return.</p>

</div><div id="887"> <br />

<p>Thus did at first the four women; but the two brethren,
Bruyn and Anthonis the weaver, who were brought out with them,
were very sorrowful, and did not speak; the women, however,
spoke much and greatly reproved the monks that were with them;
yea, they were heard to say, that Christ their Bridegroom and
Shepherd had thus gone before, and they would follow Him as His
own sheep, and they kissed one another very affectionately, the
two sisters having hold of each other's hand, and began to
sing, "My God, whither shall I go?" Then they had to separate,
and six of them were put into the wagon. When they arrived at
the scaffold, they brought Catharina, the younger sister, upon
the scaffold first. She was very bold in speaking, and
said, "Know, ye citizens, that it is not for any evil, but for
the truth." When she had ascended the scaffold, her sentence
was read, which was as follows, "If she would abide in the
Catholic church, she should be executed with the sword; but if
not, should be burnt alive." She was then asked, whether she
would abide in the Catholic church. She answered, "No; I want to
abide in the truth." They said, "Then you will be burnt alive."
"I do not care for that," she said; "you deal in
lies;" and she spoke very boldly. She was then taken from the
scaffold again, and put into the wagon; and her mouth was
closed, so that she could not speak any more. Then the two
brethren (namely, Bruyn and Anthonis) were one after the other
brought upon the scaffold, and were both beheaded, without
speaking anything, except that the one was heard to say, "O
Lord, be merciful to me." They then returned to the tower, and
fetched Dirck and Harmen. These both had their mouth gagged, so
that they could not speak; but they made many signs on the way
by nodding, and smiling and were very bold, so that the people
were astonished.</p>

<p>Thus these two were brought upon the scaffold, and they
frequently smiled and nodded to those whom they knew, and who
stood before them. Harmen then fell upon his knees and prayed
to the Lord; but as he made it too long for them, the
executioner pulled him up, and he boldly placed himself at the
stake. While the executioner was fastening Harmen, Dirck
kneeled, and called upon the Lord from the heart; for they
could not speak.</p>

</div><div id="888"> 

<p>Then Dirck arose and affectionately embraced Harmen as he
stood at the stake, kissed him, and pointed with his hand up to
heaven. Thereupon Dirck went with a joyful and smiling
countenance, and stationed himself with his back to the stake,
and cast up his eyes to heaven. When they had been thus
fastened to the stakes, the four women were brought from the
wagon to the scaffold, and saw the two standing at the stakes.
They were very glad and smiled, folded their hands, cast up
their eyes to heaven, kissed one another, and all of them fell
upon their knees, and each placed herself very boldly with her
back to the stake. While they thus kissed one another, there
came a noise almost as if it had been thunder or a wagon
without horses, and it seemed to come from the Brink, and
roared before the wagon, so that the people fell over one
another, and no one knew what it was, so that a great fear
arose. The Spaniards said that it thundered. Previously, when
the two were beheaded, the monks made a speech, that everyone
should keep his children away from this people, and that no one
should become offended, though they should now be burnt, which
was the pleasure of the royal majesty; and that no one should
make any ,disturbance. They had no sooner concluded this
speech, than there came such a noise, even as though it came
from the main street beyond, so that the people did not know
what to do with themselves for fear. Hence the Spaniards began
to cry alarm, and the drums also began to sound the alarm; but
it all passed off without any harm being done. Some said that
they saw a light over the scaffold, like a dark sun; this,
however, I did not see, but I saw and heard the noise.
Moreover, when they were standing at the stakes, straw and wood
were laid around them, so that only their heads were visible.
While thus standing at the stakes, they made many a friendly
sign to those whom they knew, by smiling, by nodding, and by
casting up their eyes to heaven; so that the Spaniards said, "To
whom may they nod thus?" And the one to whom they nodded stood
by the Spaniards in front of the scaffold, and heard the
Spaniards say it. This brother also nodded and smiled, and
pointed with his hand on high, that they should take God for
their helper. Thereupon thev cast their eyes up to heaven,
except Dircks van Wesel who was unconscious already when the
wood and straw were laid around him; for the chains that were
around his neck choked him, for he had been greatly tortured,
so that his arms had been much injured; and when the
executioner fastened his arms behind around the stake, a
faintness seized him, so that he became unconscious, and was
not seen to manifest any further signs of life. The executioner
then lighted the fire, and all six were burnt alive (together
with two baskets full of books), some almost to ashes. The
bones and bodies were buried near the gallows.</p>

<p>This was thus done at Deventer, on the Brink, the 25th of
May, A. D. 1571.Subsequently, on the 16th of July of the same
year, the other valiant heroes, namely, Claes Opreyder, Ydse
Gaukes, Lijntgen Joris, and her daughter, named Catharina, were
brought from the tower, with their mouths gagged, so that they
could not speak, and passed along the streets very boldly,
smiling and nodding to many. Thus Claes was brought upon' the
scaffold first, and he fell upon his knees, to prayer; but the
executioner lifted him up, for the Spaniards would not tolerate
it, and cried, "Villains, Villains I" But the six preceding
ones, who had been offered up first, had performed their
prayers, and had not been prevented from it; for they had been
allowed to come together, and also to kiss one another; but
since the people said so much about it, how they had prayed,
and so lovingly kissed one another, they had resolved to bring
only one at a time on the scaffold. Now when Claes stood at the
stake, they also brought Ydse upon the scaffold. and he forced
his way to Claes and kissed him. Hence the Spaniards clamored
again, and were enraged. While thev were fastening Ydse, a
Spaniard, one of the ehiefest, together with a monk, stood by
Catharina; but her mother stood at some distance from them, so
that she could not hear what thev said to her daughter. Then
the monk said, "Your mother has recanted, for she has confessed
that she was seduced; and will be executed with the sword; and
if you will recant too, you shall not die, because you are
young yet; but you shall be married and receive a large dowry,
and be helped on." But in reply to all this she shook her head.
And then the Spaniards also said much to her, that she should
recant, and she should save her life. But others said, "Do not
tell her this; but say, that if she will renounce her heresy.
she shall die as a pious Christian and be executed with the
sword." And others said, "She must onlv be made to believe, that
she will save her life; when she has recanted she shall die
nevertheless." But she shook her head to all this, so that they
became discouraged. Then the monk said, "Dear sister, recant, or
you will go from this fire into the eternal, upon this I will
pledge my soul." In the meantime the mother also was brought
upon the scaffold, and placed at the stake. Then Catharina was
seen to rejoice greatly; for she found that it was nothing but
lies. what they had told her concerning her mother. Then
Catharina was also brought upon the scaffold, and she ascended
the steps very rapidly, since she, as also the others, had
greatly longed for the hour of her redemption; and thus all
four were placed to stakes, back to back, so that they could
neither see nor nod to one another. While thus standing at the
stakes, they smiled and nodded to several yet. Then the
Spaniards said, "There are some more of this people; if we only
had them too."</p>

<p>There were also on the scaffold the provost and the
quartermaster to assist the executioner; and the provost wanted
to lay the wood about three or four feet from them, in order to
roast them from a dis-</p>

</div><div id="889"> 

<p>tance; but the quartermaster said, that the sentence was to
burn them like the first; hence they had hard words. The
Spaniards also cried, that they should be put to death slowly.
However, the wood at least was laid around them like around the
former; but little straw, with which they ignited the wood; in
order that they should die the more slowly; however it was soon
over. Thus these four offered up their sacrifice, and were
burned to ashes, on the 16th of June, A. D. 1571; from whom
many took a good example, who recognized them as the true
people, and endeavored to follow them, by the grace of God, in
a righteous and God-fearing life, which these four evinced unto
death, and thus confirmed that which they had said and written
in prison.</p>

<h2>A LETTER FROM YDSE GAUKES, SKIPPER, WHICH<br />
HE WROTE IN PRISON, AT DEVENTER, TO HIS<br />
BROTHER, AND TO THE FRIENDS, ACCORDING TO THE SPIRIT</h2> 

<p>Grace and peace from God our heavenly Father, this I wish to
all my dear brethren and sisters in the Lord, and especially to
you, my brother according to the flesh, and your beloved wife,
and my sister according to the Spirit. I wish you the true,
penitent faith, that works by love.</p>

<p>Furthermore, dear friends, there were twelve of us brethren
and sisters apprehended; there was also a new convert. We men
were confined together eight days; then the women were
examined, and they renounced the faith, especially your mother
and her daughter. After that I was brought before the lords,
when they asked me my name, and how long ago I had been
baptized. I said, "About four years." And I said, "How do you
know that it was done?" Then they said, "We cannot be satisfied,
but you must swear us an oath.""No," said I,"I must not swear."
They said, "We may." I said, "We may not, " They said, "Where is it
written?" I said, "Matt. 5." They said that I had read it
erroneously. Then one of them said to me, "What a lamb you are." After that he said, "What a devil you
are." Then they asked, how many children my wife had. I
said, "One of about nine weeks." Then they asked, "How many did
you have?" I said, "Six.""And there is none of them baptized?"
said they."That is true, my lords," I replied. Then they asked
me concerning the man that had baptized me. I told them, that
he was dead. And who had thus led me astray? I said, "My former life;" and that God had revealed it to me. They
then wrote, that we had despised God's Spirit. And they read it
all out of a letter, as it seemed to me. I said to them, "It
seems to me, that you know it well.""We do," said they. It
seemed to me, that they wrote more than I had confessed. Then I
said, that they should not write more than I had confessed."We
do not," said they. And they had it read to me again. And I was
satisfied with it. Then they asked me concerning my father and
mother and sister, and how many brothers I had. I said, "Two."
And they asked me closely concerning their names. I
said, "Pieter is the younger, and Symon.""Where does he live?"
said they. Then I told them, "He is of your belief.""He is not,"
said they. I said it was true. And I much excused them both,
and said, that they were not so bad. I then entreated them,
that they should not touch the innocent. Now they said, "Then
the woman lied; we must have her brought up." I said, "My lords,
I did not say that I do not have more." They said, "Have you
more then?" I said, "One." Then they interrogated me closely
whether I did not have more. I replied, "No." Then they wanted to know his name. I told it to them.
Then they asked me, whether he was baptized. I told them, that
they should ask him himself. Then they said, "You do not know
how to speak before the court; how will you speak before God?
We shall make you tell it." I said, "The body is at your
disposal."</p>

<p>Then they let me go down, and brought up the men, one after
the other, and they all freely confessed the faith. And we were
put together again; then we rejoiced, that we were allowed to
be together again; this continued several days. Then Anthonis
was tortured, but remained valiant. After that they fetched me,
and asked, whether I would name those whom I knew. I said, "No."
Then they said, "We shall make you tell it; but if you ask
grace, we shall grant it you, as we did to the girl in the
Norenburger street. That was Mariken Backers, who said like
Peter, that she did not know the man; this I did not want to
do. Master Pouwels was standing there, and they said, "Do you
know this man?""I saw him yesterday," said I. Then the
commissary said, "Take him, Master Pouwels." Then I went to the
rope. The executioner entreated me much;"You are still a young
man," he said. I then divested myself of my upper garments, and
the shirt was pulled off by the sleeves, and tied around the
middle of my body, and I had to stand there naked, until the
captain and the inspector came; and my hands were tied behind
my back.</p>

<p>They then drew me up, about a foot from the ground, and in
this manner left me suspended. I suffered great pain; I had
intended not to open my mouth, but I cried out thrice, and then
kept silence. This is only child's play, they said, and letting
me down again they placed me in a chair, and neither asked nor
said anything to me. I had an iron bolt with two rings on my
feet, and they tied three cannon balls to the rings. When they
drew me up again, a Spaniard with a gold chain wanted to strike
me in the face, but he could not. While thus suspended, I
worked hard and drew one foot through the ring; then the whole
weight was on one leg. They would have tied it again but I
forced it through. Then they all laughed, and I had great
pain.</p>

<p>Then they placed me in a chair, and I named</p>

</div><div id="890"> 

<p>several persons whom I thought they knew, for they could
name others to me. Concerning Claes Opreyder I have no
certainty; for one says this, and another that. I hope by the
grace of the Lord to give my life for it; I say, by the grace
of the Lord. My mind is still unchanged; I pray the Lord night
and day, to give me strength. Do you also heartily pray the
Lord for me; for the effectual fervent prayer of the righteous
man availeth much. James ~ 16.</p>

<p>Afterwards I had great conflict from my wife, because she
frequently sent monks to me; but God helped me. After that I
was brought above before the bishop and the pastor, and they
talked much with me, that I must believe more than was written
in the Gospel."For," said they,"how do you know that I am a
man?" I said, "How should I not know that?""Where is it
written," said they,"and in what chapter?" And they also asked
how I knew that she was my wife; and other such sophistries,
but little from the Scriptures.</p>

<p>Then I went back to my castle, in which I had to be
confined. My mother also visited me once; I greatly pitied the
woman. I said that God would comfort her. Then they said, it
was the last day of grace. On the same day the bishop made an
exhortation to the apostates. Then came the superior of the
Franciscans and said, "I run down here for your sake, it was the
last day of grace, but God's grace is always open." After the
exhortation was over, they took me above, where stood my wife,
crying bitterly; but I said, "We must not forsake God.""You are
not to forsake God," said the bishop, and she wept much. But
turning my heart to God, I thought, the suffering after this
life would be too long. Katelijntgen was also greatly tortured,
and drawn out and suspended with two irons to her legs. Then
came the executioner, and said that though the woman had been
drawn limb from limb, she would not have said one word; this
was a joy for me to hear. Trijntgen, too, was subjected to many
assaults, by comfort and promises, and by threats that she
should be severely tortured. They compared her to a dog, who,
they said, was better than she. The Lord helped her. But (as a
warning) she was not prudent in speaking; for, the pastor
speaking of the Old Testament, she would not listen to it,
which was speaking foolishly on her part; but she wanted to
adhere to the New Testament. This Gijsbert told me, and he says
that he is innocent with regard to us, for there were read to
him at least a hundred [names] from different places; and
through him I obtained these [writing] materials. And, dear
brother, see to my poor little orphans. I wish all the
God-fearing the fear of the Lord. Written in great fear and
distress. I commend you to the Lord; take good heed to
yourself.</p>

<p>Written by me, your dear brother, from prison, the twentieth
day of our imprisonment.</p>

<p class="c5">YDSE GAUKES.</p>

<h2>THE SECOND LETTER OF YDSE GAUKES</h2> 

<p>We prisoners in the Lord for the testimony of our dear Lord
Jesus Christ, of which we are not worthy to boast ourselves;
grace and peace from our dear Lord Jesus Christ be with our
very dear and chosen, beloved brethren and sisters, through the
obedience of the Gospel. We wish you, our much beloved, the
true penitent faith which works by love. To this end may the
power of the Holy Ghost strengthen you. Amen.</p>

<p>After all proper salutation, be pleased to know, our much
beloved, that we are still in good health according to the
flesh, and also according to the spirit, and unchanged in mind
and faith, and, moreover, have a peaceful conscience, and are
sure that it is the truth, and that no other shall ever be
found, though there are many subtle spirits, who seek another
way than taught by Christ, and in which He went before them.
Hence, rejoice with us, our much beloved, that our Father has
helped us to triumph. Truly indeed did He say, "Though a mother
forsake her child, yet will he not forsake us." You must
confess with us, that He has done this; for which we cannot
thank Him enough, since we well know, that of ourselves we have
nothing at all but wickedness: as the apostle says, "I know that
in my flesh dwelleth no good thing." Rom. 7:18. Further, my
much beloved chosen brethren and sisters, know that the Lord
can still order it well; though we are here in the tyrants'
hands, yet we fare better here than you people think; for the
Lord still sends us every day a Habakkuk (H. Drag. 34), which
is my sister, who can still come to us every day, and she does
not tire of it either; besides, every third day we have a kind
guard, so that many people can speak with us. Furthermore, dear
friends, I cannot conceal from you the joy which we have, that
they have confined us together in the tower, each in a small
cell about eight feet square and made of two thick planks. In
this place we are confined; but we see and often speak with one
another, which is a great joy to us, and for which we are also
envied by him who used to be my best friend on earth, who said
that we were confined too close to one another, and that we
strengthened one another still more. Hence the Lord may well
say, when an unclean spirit his been cast out, he comes and
looks at the house; if he finds it empty and swept, he takes
with himself seven other spirits more wicked than himself.
Matt. 12:43.</p>

<p>Furthermore, my dear friends, be not proud, and trust not in
yourselves, but commit your cause to the Lord. He who was the
strongest and of the best courage when we were first
apprehended, and with whom to be together was a joy to us,
moreover, who remained very valiant in the torture, lies now
also in the mire; hence trust not in yourselves. Further, dear
friends, they let us lie here, so that in six weeks no one
looked after us, save that the commissary had our sister
Trijntgen brought above,</p>

</div><div id="891"> 

<p>to ask her concerning one from Ghent whom they did not know;
they also inquired after other friends from Ghent, but did not
obtain their wish. Then we expected our sentence since we knew
nothing else but that we should offer up our sacrifice. At the
last two Franciscans came to me; however they had not been
sent. They unlocked the doors, and asked how it was with me."As
God will," said I."Yes," said they,"and as you will too." We
talked of the Gospel; they asked, "How do you know that it is
the Gospel?" I said, "I know this well, for Christ has sealed it
with His blood." One of them became angry. I said, "Be still, or
wait a little; you treat us worse than Jews; for the Jews are
tolerated for tribute, but us you put to death." Then he became
angry again and said, "Your rascality puts you to death.""We
have done nothing amiss," said I. He wanted to go away, and
cried aloud."Be meek," I said."Yes," said they,"this is your
word: O Father, forgive them; for they know not what they do."
Then he went off. Once there came also two Beguines,* who
wanted to say much to my fellow prisoners. I said, "May one also
baptize something else than men?""No," said they,"no beasts." I
said, "Why then do you baptize bells?" That was customary they
said;"it is an old custom that when there is a bad storm we
ring the bells; then it passes away." I said, "Yes, when the
worst is over, you begin to ring, and thus you think that it
helps." Then they said, "It is not good for the people to come
to him."</p>

  <p class="c8">* Nuns of the order of St. Bega.</p>

<p>I can also not hide from you, how unmercifully they dealt
with our sister: they tied her clothes together in the middle,
but completely bared the upper part of her body. Then said our
sister (who is still a young girl), "Never yet was such shame
inflicted upon me.""You inflict it upon you yourself," they
said. Further, my dear brethren- and sisters, who shall see or
hear read this our brief letter, we inform you all thereby,
that our mind is still valiant and unchanged; that we do not
exhort you more, is attributable to our little knowledge; for
which I hope you will excuse us. Know, my beloved friends, that
we greatly rejoice with exceeding joy, because we received
letters from you; for it refreshes our inward man.</p>

<p>Now, my very chosen dear brethren and sisters, we prisoners,
beseech you most earnestly, that you will now take heed to
yourselves, and to your walk; for my much beloved brother and
sister; when one comes to be thus confined, then only he finds,
that the way is narrow and the gate strait, that leads unto
life; yea, many shall strive for it, but not enter in, because
they are not of the right number. Therefore, my dear and in God
beloved brother and sister, examine daily the inmost of your
heart when the daily fear comes upon you, and do not hide your
sins, lest you sink under them; for you cannot conceal them
from the Lord-He has eyes like flames of fire. O
my chosen, you can deceive no one but yourselves. We have an
example in David, when he sent the man into the battle, and
wrote that he should be put in the forefront of the hottest
battle, and where there were valiant men opposed to Israel; in
order that he might obtain the wife. What did Nathan say to the
king? There was a man who had many sheep, and there was a man
that had one only sheep; and he that had many sheep took from
the man that one sheep, and slew it. Then David himself judged
that he [David] was worthy of death; but he went and watered
his couch with his tears. II Sam. 11:14; Ps. 6:6. See. my dear
brother and sister, let us ever watch and take heed, and if we
are overtaken by any evil, let us not be too good to repent,
but with David and Manasseh (II Chronicles 33:12) confess our
sins, and we shall find grace before God. O my dear and chosen
brother and sister, had this been done in Friesland, and
everyone looked into his own heart, it would never have turned
out so badly. But when everyone is proud and says, "Show me my
guilt;" thinking, I will not yield, what should the people say?
yea. I will resign my honor and ministry. O friends, had they
taken heed, and everyone examined his own heart, and willingly
repented, no one would have fallen into such great trouble.</p>

<p>Hence, my beloved, always keep in the obedience of the
Gospel, and do not suffer yourselves to be moved by every wind
of doctrine, but abide in that before which you have bowed your
knees; remember that Paul says, "Though an angel from heaven
should come and preach any other gospel, let him be accursed."
Gal. 1:8. And beware of the abominable marrying out of the
church, which some of you would introduce: and behold Israel,
how they had to forsake the heathen wives. Therefore, my dear
friends, take diligent heed, as long as it is called today; and
let us always diligently build on the temple, with the sword of
the Spirit at our side, that we may resist the enemies, lest
they take our glory. For we have received a talent, which the
Lord shall require again at our hands; and if He finds us
faithful, He will make us rulers over many thins. Hence, my
chosen, let us ever take earnest heed, always diligently to
keep the pearl of great price which we have found, lest robbers
take it from us; for if it is taken from us we are ruined.
Hence keep good watch, and think, dear brethren and sisters,
that if a piece of gold were given you not larger than a penny,
and it were said to you, "Keep this but three or four years, and there shall come a
dearth, which shall last a year; and keep this piece so long,
and you shall buy for it enough to keep you from want; but if
you lose it, you must die of hunger;" how closely would you
guard it-would you not every day, when the time drew near that
you would be in need of it, see whether you had not lost it? I
think, every hour. See, my chosen, you that have received the
faith, to you this money is given, to keep it as long as you
live;</p>

</div><div id="892"> 

<p>and if you keep it unto the end, you shall receive eternal
life for it.</p>

<p>Thus, my much beloved, now that you know that the day is
approaching when you must have it, take earnest heed lest you
lose it; for if you should lose it the last day, it could avail
you nothing; though one had kept it a hundred years, it could
not avail him anything; as the prophet says, "If a man hath done
good all his life, and walked uprightly, and turned himself to
unrighteousness, all the good that he hath done before shall
avail him nothing." See, how the Lord requires obedience of us,
as the prophet Samuel said to Saul, "The Lord delighteth more in
obedience, than in sacrifices." I Samuel 15:22. And consider
also the man of God, how he was punished by the Lord because he
had hearkened to the false prophet, and not done what the Lord
had commanded him. I Kings 13:24. Behold Israel, when they had
sinned, they had to turn their backs before their enemies:
Josh. 7:12. And Christ Himself says, "Ye are my friends, if ye
do whatsoever I command you." John 15:14. Yea, he that endureth
to the end shall be saved (Matthew 10:22); for it lies neither
in the beginning nor in the middle. Hence, look diligently
before you, lest ye be deceived; for Christ has truly said,
that many false prophets shall rise and cry, "Here is Christ,
there is Christ." Matt. 24:11, 5. Therefore, my chosen, beware,
lest you be deceived. They went out from us, says the apostle;
but if they had been of us, they would no doubt have continued
with us. I John 2:19.</p>

<p>Herewith I will commend you to the Lord, and to the rich
Word of His grace. Know, that our brother Claes still suffers
great pain in his limbs, on account of his age; and our sister
Lijntgen has also great pain in her shoulders; but Trijntgen
and I do not ail. Now we prisoners greet you very cordially;
also all the churches and lovers of the truth in the
neighborhood; by name, P. J. and your wife; and I thank you
most heartily for your letter. Greet W. in my name, and send it
to L. J. in Molqueeren, in Friesland, and also to Jan de P. and
to those of Amsterdam; I have also written something for him,
which put with it, and see that this a .3o gets to Embden, to
my beloved brother and his wife. My dear brother, and dear
sister, grieve not for us, for your mother and sister are of
very good cheer; and tell Machtelken, rather to beware of
Harmen; he seeks to bring her into the mire; if he can get out,
I have heard him say, he will make a good Christian of her. We
also salute our scattered fellow believers. Now, my
affectionately beloved brethren and sisters, remember us
prisoners in your prayers and assemblies, for the earnest
prayer of the faithful avails much. We expect from day to day
to offer up our sacrifice. And, dear friends, do write us.</p>

<p>Written in great fear and distress, in the prison at
Deventer, after having been imprisoned nine weeks.</p>

<h2>THE THIRD LETTER OF YDSE GAUKES, WRITTEN IN<br />
PRISON IN DEVENTER</h2> 

<p>The grace of God our heavenly Father, who created and made
heaven and earth; and the love of His beloved Son, our Lord,
Redeemer and Saviour, which is Jesus Christ, by whom He has
delievered us from eternal enmity and the torment of hell; and
the power of the Holy Ghost, who works in all His elect; this
we wish all our known, and also our unknown, brethren and
sisters, and all lovers of the truth, as a most cordial and
affectionate salutation. Amen.</p>

<p>Further, my very elect brethren and sisters, fellow
believers of our most holy faith, by the grace and mercy of
God, branches on the vine of the Lord; we prisoners, confined
for the testimony of the truth, intend to write you et a
little) by which you may remember us; if the Ord permits it
that you may get this little out of the lions' den; for we
think and trust that our Lord will soon deliver us, and that we
shall have no time any more to write to you. If we did not have
my sister, we would fare very meagerly and suffer hunger; but
now we have a sufficiency; may the Lord reward it, and
recompense it a hundredfold to them that show us mercy.</p>

<p>ow, my dear and much beloved brethren and sisters by the
obedience of the Gospel, know that according to the flesh we
are still tolerably well, and in the faith unchanged, and are
sure that it is the right truth, and that no other will ever be
found neither now nor in eternity, for we are sure, and find
the Lord faithful in all His promises; as He says, that He will
not forsake His own, but keep them as the apple of His eye; and
that He will not suffer them to be tempted above that they are
able, but will with the temptation also make a way to escape;
wherein we also firmly trust. Hence, my dear chosen brethren
and sisters, beseech the Lord heartily for us, that He will
give us power and strength when the hour of suffering is at
hand; for our persecutors greatly threaten us, that they will
torture us in this and that manner, and roast us alive with a
large fire placed at a distance from us.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear brethren, and sisters in the Lord, help
to pray the Lord for us, since of ourselves we have nothing but
all weakness, and are compassed about with frail flesh. But we
find abundant comfort when we consider the Word of the Lord,
and His promises to those who strive valiantly unto death, and
cleave to them; for he that remains steadfast shall receive the
promises, since He never yet has forsaken any that trusted in
Him, and who think of the fight which our captain Christ Jesus
fought for us, so that they willingly follow Him. Hence, we
joyfully wait for our redemption, though they threaten us much,
they can do us no more than what the Lord permits them; and
whatsoever the Lord permits them, to that we will resign
ourselves, for our flesh, with which we have offended the Lord
so often, has merited it more than a thousand times.
Furthermore, my dear</p>

</div><div id="893"> 

<p>brethren and sisters, we expect from day to day to be
offered up, for we thought we should offer up our sacrifice
when our fellow prisoners offered up theirs. Now, my much
beloved brethren and sisters, you that have submitted to the
obedience of the Gospel, and have with Noah entered into the
ark, and are with Lot gone out of Sodom, and with Moses out of
Egypt, through the Red Sea, and choose rather to suffer
affliction with the children of God, than to enjoy, with
Pharaoh, the pleasures of sin for a season; therefore now, my
dear friends, be valiant with righteous Noah, who firmly
trusted in the Lord's promises, and with patience waited for
the day promised him by the Lord, namely, an hundred and twenty
years. See, my dear brethren and sisters, who are still in this
tabernacle, and have with Noah received a promise, that there
shall come a day that will be upon all flesh; if you are then
found upright before the Lord, you shall with Noah be forever
saved. And obey the Lord with Lot, and firmly believe what God
commands you, for He wants His co mandments kept, as we have an
example in Lot's ife, that she was turned into a pillar of
salt; and further in Israel; when they observed His laws an
commandments, no one was able to harm or hinder them; as we
have an example in the children of Israel, to whom the promised
land was promised; but they did not obtain it, because they did
not trust in the Lord; for of six hundred thousand not more
than two entered into the promised land; but their descendants
were led through Jordan by Joshua, and the Lord mightily helped
them, so that they according to the Lord's command went around
Jericho with the ark of the covenant, and the walls fell.</p>

<p>See, my dear, beloved brethren and sisters, if we trust in
the Word of the Lord, and keep His commandments, and always
walk according to the Lord's rule, and call upon the Lord day
and night, He will fight for us. Yea., our enemies shall not be
able to harm us, but they shall be confounded. But if the
righteous forsake the Lord, they must turn their backs before
their enemies, as we read in Joshua, concerning Achan and
others, also of Saul, who was the first king of Israel; when
the Lord had commanded him, to go forth to fight against the
Amalekites, and to spare no one, he went, but did not keep the
Lord's command; hence the Spirit of the Lord departed from him,
and the Lord set David in his stead; on which account he
persecuted David. And thus the righteous have ever had to
suffer from the unrighteous. Jacob, from Esau; Abel, from Cain,
because his offering was acceptable before the Lord, and his
brother's not; hence he was killed by Cain; and this generation
is still in the world.</p>

<p>See, my much beloved and chosen brethren and sisters, to
whom the truth, which is hid from so many thousands is
revealed, and who have received grace from God; let us show
obedience to the Lord, as did our father Abraham, who is the
father of thefaithful; and Jephthah, who did not spare his only
daughter, but willingly offered her up to the Lord. Judges
11:39. Hence, my dear brethren and sisters, let us diligently
fear the Lord, and observe His commandments, and He will be
gracious unto us. Therefore, my very dear and beloved brethren
and sisters, only be faithful unto the end, and neither be
terrified, nor fear; though this generation has now great power
to crush and kill the people of God, they can do no more than
the Lord permits them. Hence let us keep good watch for our
souls, and always be vigilant; for the Lord says Himself, "Watch and pray; for the Lord shall come as a thief in the
night." O, my dear brethren and sisters, that we might then not
be found idle or drowsy, but with the five wise virgins always
have oil in our lamps, and ever be ready and watch for the
coming of our Bridegroom, so that with Gideon we may be found
worthy; for they were not all accepted; only three hundred were
found worthy. Judges 6:12. Even as also Christ Himself says,
that many are called, but few chosen. Matt. 20:16; 22:14.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear brethren and sisters in the Lord, let us
diligently pray to God with a fervent heart, that we may be
known and reckoned with the little flock, and that we may be
stones in the Lord's temple, and branches on the Lord's vine,
and valiantly follow our Lord and Bishop even unto the end; and
it shall be well with us; and walk 'in all righteousness and
holiness, and always be mindful of the day of the Lord, and not
depart from the Lord's way; and He will have compassion upon us
and be gracious unto us. For He shall separate the sheep from
the goats, and say to them on His right hand, "Come, ye blessed, inherit the kingdom prepared for you."
And to them on His left hand, "Depart from me, ye cursed, into
everlasting fire." Matt. 25:32. Oh, how lamentable will it then
be with those who here have feared men more than the Lord; yea,
who now say, "The Lord is gracious and merciful," which is true;
but He is also righteous, and wants His commandments kept.
Hence, O dear people, think of the day of which Peter
says, "That one day is with the Lord as a thousand years." II
Peter 3:8. How lamentably it will then be deplored! See, my
dear brethren and sisters, my materials are about to give out;
hence I must conclude. We prisoners will therefore herewith bid
you adieu, namely we four; our names you well know; let this
reach Jan de P., our sister Lijntgen's brother. We prisoners
cordially salute you with the Word of the Lord, and are still
of good cheer, and trust to offer up a willing sacrifice to the
Lord; the Lord God strengthen us with His Holy Spirit. And,
dear brothers Bauke, Symon, and Pieter, who are my brothers
according to the flesh, take care for your souls; though you
are young yet, do not depend on that: you know neither the day
nor the hour, and enough is revealed to you that you well
know that it is the truth. Herewith I will send you my last
adieu, as I do not</p>

</div><div id="894"> 

<p>think I will see you anymore; but see that we may meet one
another again with joy.</p>

<p>Now, my dear brother Bauke and your wife, your mother and
sister, and I your brother, salute you and all acquaintances
most cordially; I send you our last salutation here, and may
the Lord make us worthy, that hereafter we may meet one another
again with joy. Claes greets you very cordially, and we also
greet much all those that have remembered us by writing, and we
are much rejoiced in this, that you still have such delight in
the truth. Herewith we bid our dear brethren and fellow
believers of our faith our last adieu; may the Lord keep you
all in righteousness and holiness.</p>

<p>Written in our dark prison, with bad materials; hence
receive it in good part. Given the ninety-fifth day of our
imprisonment, the 14th of June, in the year 1571, in
Deventer.</p>

<br />

<h1>DOUWE EEUWOUTS, A. D. 1571</h1> 

<p>They who seek truly to follow the words and commandments of
God often have to suffer great contempt and persecution from
the learned of this world, as was well seen at Leeuwaerden, in
Friesland in the case of a brother named Douwe Eeuwouts, who on
the 3d of January of the year 1571, for the name of Christ, had
to leave five little children alone in the house, and suffer
himself to be imprisoned in a dark dungeon, where he had to
remain confined with criminals for a long time, which he,
though longing to be offered up, patiently suffered. Afterwards
he was examined by the bishop and others, who greatly tormented
him, in order to cause him to recant, but all in vain. They
asked him concerning his faith, which he freely confessed. They
also greatly praised up to him the pope's trumpery; but he
said, he would keep to the commandments of God, and let go the
commandments of men. He also proved, that their hours, mass,
confirmation, anointing, exorcising, and other things were not
in accordance with the Word of God; and he further besought
them, that now that he had confessed his faith, they should not
torment him any more, but cut short his sufferings and
troubles; for he was ready to give up his life for the truth,
knowing that he might then expect the crown of life. Finally
the bishop condemned him as a heretic, and delivered him to the
secular judges, that they should deal with him according to the
king's decree, for these so-called Christians, like the
Pharisees, can put no one to death. But in consequence of the
bishop's delivering him, Douwe Eeuwouts, after long
imprisonment, was sentenced to death on the 12th of October, A.
D. 1571, to be drowned the following night. When he heard this
sentence, he showed himself valiant as a giant in the faith,
not terrified by impending death, but greatly longing for the
new Jerusalem; and sat in the room with his head uncovered,
thanking, praising, and praying to his heavenly Father, till
the hour of his departure had come. They then tookhim, and tied
him in a bag, when he began to sing"I poor lamb on the heath."
Many that were there praised his boldness, that he went to
death so voluntarily and joyfully.</p>

<p>Thus he most joyfully departed this temporal sorrow, and
ended his life in the water, and now rests under the altar, and
there waits for the eternal joy which is promised to all of
God's dear children.</p>

<h2>HANS MISEL, A. D. 1571</h2> 

<p>In the year 1571, Hans Misel, a weaver, who was yet a young
man, at Langensmeer in Swabia, was asked by some persons to
read and speak from the Word of the Lord; and as he declared to
them the way of the truth, he was betrayed, and reported at
Warthausen. The lady who then resided there, sent her clerk
thither, who came with servants, surprised the brother, drew
his sword, and with the hilt of the same several times struck
the brother on the heart or breast, berating him fearfully, and
saying, he had power to do this and more. He also struck him
with the blade of the sword, and said he had authority to
thrust him through with it, and kill him. But the brother did
not allow himself to be intimidated, but with gentle words said
to the clerk, that he should calm himself, and not carry on so.
The clerk bound him himself, and they took him with them to
Barthausen, and kept him that night in a house, where they
reveled and caroused, and made sport of and ignominiously
treated the brother, the whole night. When day came, they
conducted him into the castle, and confined him in a tower,
where many priests came to him, who greatly labored with and
tempted him; but all that came to him had to retire from him
with shame. The executioner also had to do his part to try him;
they greatly racked and tortured him, but could not move him to
renounce his belief or to do anything that was contrary to the
faith. When they had finished all their temptations, and he
remained steadfast, and would not depart a single step from the
way of faith and of the divine truth, the lady of the castle
sent for the priests, and said to them, that she was a woman,
and knew little how he ought to be dealt with; they should
advise her as to what ought to be done with him. Here the lady
had hit upon the right counselors, even as though one were to
ask the wolf what ought to be done with the sheep; for they
immediately presented to her the imperial law and mandate, and
thus adjudged him worthy of death, according to the way of
their fathers, who also gave counsel concerning Christ and
cried, "Away with him, he is worthy of death; we have a law, and
by the same he ought to die." John 19:15, 7. Thus it happened
that he was sentenced to death; several in the council however
would not give their voice; but this was of no avail, the
devil, who works in the children of unbelief, was master of the
game.</p>

<p>Now when he was to be executed in the morning,</p>

</div><div id="895"> 

<p>his friends came in the night, and wanted to help him out of
the tower. They dug until they came almost to him, so that he
heard them. He warned them, that they should not dare do this,
since he should not come out to them through the hole; hence
they had to let it go. And as the sentence had come, that he
was to be executed, they wanted to,give him something to eat
first; but he would not eat, and when he heard that his last
hour had now come, he requested to be left alone in peace, in a
corner for a little while, which they granted him, without
knowing why he requested this; however, they had him watched,
to see what he should do, and what he intended. He raised his
hands to heaven, and offered up an earnest and sincere prayer
to God, and also praised God, that He had permitted him to see
this hour, and had counted him worthy thereto; and prayed that
He would give him power and courage for it, that he might die
the death of an upright and manifest witness of God. He then
also faithfully thanked God for all the benfits which He had
ever shown him, and also prayed that God would assist him now
in his last hour, which was at hand, and thus commended himself
into the hands of the Lord his God.</p>

<p>The executioner said, "This man is bolder than we all."</p>

<p>When he had finished praying, he came forward again to the
people with smiling lips, and was willing to die. The confessor
of Warthausen went with him when he was taken out, and wanted
that he should renounce, and have mercy on himself. But he
said, that they should renounce and turn from their whoredom,
villainy, and the idolatrous, ungodly life, into which they
were sunken.</p>

<p>When the executioner brought him to the place where he was
to be executed, he said to him, that if he would recant, he
still had authority to let him go. But he refused, and would
there seal his faith with his blood, and so far as he was
concerned, he said, he might proceed. Thus he was beheaded and
then burnt, and as they could not burn him quickly enough, they
cut him into pieces and burned the pieces. When the executioner
had struck off his head, so that the same lay on the ground,
his body still remained erect, with the hands uplifted, as
though he were praying, till the executioner pushed him over
with his foot. It was also said that his head and hair could
not~be burned, but that it was found entire and undisfigured in
the ashes, and was thus buried. This took place on the 13th of
December of said year 1571.</p>

<p>When he was about to be executed, he said, his blood should
be seen in the sun. And it came to pass on the third day after,
at noon that the sun presented a blood-red appearance, and
where it shone through the windows, upon tables and other
things, they seemed as though they were standing in the fire,
so that the people came together in the streets from amazement,
as those who saw it and are still living can testify.</p>

<h2>JAN BLOCK BURNT FOR THE FAITH, AT NIMEGUEN,<br />
A. n. 1572</h2> 

<p>About the year 1572, there was burnt at Nimeguen, a young
man named Jan Block, who had wealth, and lived of the same, so
that he had not learned any profession or trade. He associated
with a brother named Symon van Maren, a furrier, born at
Hertogenbosch, with whom he formerly was wont to go to the
tavern to tipple, but who, after he was converted, admonished
him to read the New Testament, which advice he also followed;
and the good Lord so opened his heart, that he understood from
it what was right, and joined the church of God. This done, he
could not remain hid, since he led a better life than before;
so that all his property was confiscated, and a price set upon
his apprehension, that whoever would betray him, should receive
for it seventy gold reals. Then he fled out of the city, and in
a village asked a mason for work as a tender, in order that he
might earn a living, since he knew nothing else to do. The
mason refused him this, saying: "They would come here to
apprehend you, and this would bring me into trouble." Sometime
after he came into town, where he was espied by a traitor, who
went and reported it to the officer and his beadles, who came
to seek him. The woman of the house had compassion on Jan
Block, and he went and stood upon the bed behind the curtains.
The bailiff looked into the chamber, but did not search very
closely, since he was not a bloodthirsty man, and then turned
back again, saying: "He is not there." The traitor said, "He is
there; I saw him go in." One of the beadles went back, and
raising the curtains, saw him standing there. He was then taken
along, as a malefactor. While in prison he was often visited,
and cared for by the God-fearing.</p>

<p>Finally sentence of death was pronounced upon him, and he
was condemned to be burned at the stake as a heretic.</p>

<p>While this took place, one of the lords in the court, who,
since Jan Block was of high descent, had formerly associated
much with him, sought, as he pretended, to convert him to the
Romish faith before his end; to whom this valiant witness of
Jesus Christ, turning around, answered: "You should have
converted me when we were formerly together in such and such
places (which he named to him) and each of us had a harlot in
his lap."</p>

<p>Coming upon the scaffold, to be put to death, he showed such
a joyful countenance, as though he had come to a wedding feast
or a festival; for he went to the stake at which he was to
offer up his sacrifice, with as much alacrity as though he had
made a leap.</p>

<p>Having arrived at the stake, he pointed out to the
executioner his carelessness, consisting in this, that the
holes where he was to be fastened were not bored at the proper
place.</p>

<p>Shortly after this, after having commended his</p>

</div><div id="896"> 

<p>soul into the hands of God, and suffering many tortures, he
was burned, and an end put to his life.</p>

<p>All this was so affecting, that several of the lords who had
sat in judgment over him shed tears of compassion for this
innocent, but nevertheless well-established and steadfast young
man; which we have deemed necessary to record from the
testimony of those who according to their statement were
present on that occasion and witnessed it.</p>

<h2>A LETTER WRITTEN BY JAN BLOCK</h2> 

<p>It is good that a man should both hope and quietly wait for
the salvation of the Lord. Lamentations 3:26.</p>

<p>The grace and peace of God our Father and the Lord Jesus
Christ. Amen. Blessed be God, the heavenly Father of our Lord
Jesus Christ, the Father of mercies, and the God of all
comfort; who comforteth us in all our tribulation, that we may
be able to comfort them which are in any trouble, by the
comfort wherewith we ourselves are comforted of God. For as the
sufferings of Christ abound in us, so our consolation also
aboundeth by Christ. And whether we be afflicted or comforted,
it is all for our good and our salvation. This salvation,
except my bonds, I wish you from the depth of my soul, for
comfort and salvation in your greatest need, when you, dear
brother in the Lord, will have need of help and comfort, as
you, moved and impelled through the operation of the Holy
Spirit, have now at the right time written and sent to me, poor
prisoner at Nimeguen, for the Word of our dear Lord; by which
you have done me such a great and acceptable service, that I
shall never in my life be able sufficiently to thank God my
heavenly Father, who appointed you, like Habakkuk, to bring
food, by which the pious Daniel was fed outwardly according to
the flesh, through the confidence which he had toward our God.
O how great is this spiritual food, dear brother, with which
you have fed and comforted my poor, hungry soul, which you,
according to the opportunity of the past, abundantly wrote to
me in your letter from the holy word of the Lord, for my
consolation, and to incite me to take undaunted courage; for
which I, as said above, cannot sufficiently thank you. By the
help of our dear Lord I hope to do the same; through the
almighty Lord I still have the will to do well from the heart.
I hope and trust in God our heavenly Father, who shall
strengthen me, poor, unworthy prisoner for His holy Word, to
finish it to His holy praise, when I shall offer up my
sacrifice, as you write to me of many prophets and apostles,
yea, of Christ Himself, who, for the -sins of us all, out of
love for us was led to the slaughter as a dumb lamb; how much
more ought I, poor miserable sinner, to deliver up my life for
His holy name's sake, of which I sincerely deem myself
unworthy. Yet I trust, as above, and as you wrote to me, as the
prophet Ezekiel speaks by the mouth of the Most High, that He
will remember sins nomore, as we, the Lord be thanked, well
know on what condition the Lord has spoken to us. All that
desire this, and are converted from the heart, God will
hear.</p>

<p>And such as lament and moan night and day over their great
transgression, as I poor, miserable sinner have done, He will
hear, and be gracious unto them, for He loves to forgive, so
that I, as said above, gladly surrender myself for the name of
my Lord, and suffer by His grace very patiently for my sins,
and deliver up my body, as did the seven children in Maccabees.
And the pious Eleazar would much rather die honorably, than
dissimulate and set a bad example to the young brethren. Thus,
by the grace of God, is also my mind, dear brother in the Lord.
But, much beloved brother, I have such great conflict on
account of my former life, that I did not gain a living as an
honest man. But, the Lord be thanked, a little before my
imprisonment, I had resolved by the grace of the Lord, to
support myself in all humility and holiness by the labor of my
hands; however, I have not time to carry it out. Hence my mind
is often troubled, and this by the passage of Paul where he
says that,"Though I had faith, so that I could remove
mountains, and gave all my goods to the poor, and gave my body
to be burned, and had not charity, it were all of no avail."
And that we are to live so holy and unblamable, this causes my
heart to shrink, and my eyes daily to flow like a river,
because I have so sinfully spent my precious time; this the
Lord knows, for whose Word and testimony I, miserable sinner am
imprisoned; yet I woul' not give my hope and faith for a
thousand worlds. O dear brethren, how little have I known, much
less had, the true regeneration and new creature, as I now feel
it through the grace of God, and should gladly confess it, if I
had the time. Friends, have earnest love to one another, and
edify one another in all humility and earnestness in the
exercise of godliness, and daily exhort one another to all
holiness; also that each be the least in his own eyes, and that
you do not walk so haughtily and with such display, lest the
poor, blind world, according to her doing, surpass* us in many
things. This view I have now, by the grace of God, had for some
little time, and if I had indeed in the beginning felt it thus,
and accepted it, as I ought to have done, and as I now, alas I
in my last time had resolved, by the grace of the Lord, to do,
I should certainly not have come to such great sorrow, which
originated in superciliousness or secret pride and an easy
life. Hence, dear brother, and dear ministers of the church of
God, wherever you are, take diligent care, as faithful laborers
in the vineyard [and direct into the right way] the branches,
which shoot up very lightly, and grow in the fullness and
vanity of their mind, who are also alienated from the life of
God. I only now begin to experience with the understanding,
what the new cr,eature is.</p>

<p class="c8">* Walk, move more circumspectly.-Trans.</p>

</div><div id="897"> 

<p>O dear brethren and watchmen over the house of the Lord, do
not regard the person; for those that are young in the
understanding of the Christian life can be ruined in no way
more effectively, than by not diligently exhorting them with
the Word of the Lord, to become new creatures. and to humility,
and to lead a godly life. Oh, how I have experienced this
within my own self, that so few are found at this time who are
truly converted and renewed, and rightly follow the life and
the footsteps in which Christ went before us. Oh, if they felt
it, as I now in my last time feel it, they would be afraid of
speaking or thinking of anything, except chiefly of the law of
the Lord. O dear friends, now only I understand it, and very
often think of one of our three sisters, who wrote her son
Tobias a testament, in which she speaks, I think, of improving
our time, and that we shall deplore noticing more, than that we
have so little improved our time, but often spent it in
frivolity. O dear friends, I would from the heart, that those
that are guilty in this matter, or are found slothful, could
feel their present time as I now feel in my heart my past time,
and am accused [in my conscience] concerning it; you would
certainly be found, in godly exercise, to be renewed in the
power of the Spirit, into a new, spiritual life, which is like
the image of Him, who poured out His holy blood for us poor
sinners; then we should indeed show forth the mind and nature
of Christ in words and in works. We should then, according to
Matt. 5, so let our light shine, and be such a salt of the
earth, that we should indeed have the greater praise before
this adulterous generation; yea, we should shine forth with a
clear light in the church of God. Even as the light of the
candle is improved by trimming it, so if we would in our short
time, trim our body in word and deed from our carnal body, in
words and in works, yea, in dress and worldliness, then our
lights would certainly be found to give forth a clearer light.
Hence since every one sees, how many there are found to be
darkness, to the reproach of the Gospel, we see here, that so
many in this last time, without affliction, become alienated
from God, and wax cold; that, as the Lord says, when the Son of
man shall come, whether He shall then find faith on the earth.
O dear friends, though one may guard himself so as not to be
punished with excommunication, do you think that one is then
also a new creature before God, truly according to His Father's
image, truly dead unto all sin? Oh, no; I think differently;
and this through the grace of the Lord. But this is my last
time, to all appearance, and I also make no other calculation,
than to surrender my body from day to day for the testimony.of
the Word of our dear Lord, to suffer a little through His
grace, and to strive manfully, even unto death, yea, unto the
death by fire, or whatever my enemies will, as the Lord permits
them. I have commended myself to the Lord of my salvation and
strength, and my helper in time of need.O dear brother and
sister in the Lord, I have written this letter, my little gift,
to you most beloved, with abundant tears, out of love. In
short, I beseech you, dear brother, and my cordially beloved
sisters in the Lord, from the depth of my soul, that you will
everywhere with one accord, bow your knees before God, and lift
up holy hands to the Lord, and entreat the almighty Father for
me poor weak servant, that He will give me strength, that I may
finish it joyfully, to His holy praise, and to my salvation,
undismayed unto death, as I hope and trust, without my
knowledge. And it behooves you to write, according to ancient,
holy custom, that the strong pray for the weak, especially in
peril of death. I pray the almighty Lord according to my weak
ability for you dear brethren and sisters in the Lord, that He
will keep you that are still in a good state; and those who
have erred or sinned in anything, that they may truly confess
their sins before God, with weeping, and be converted in time.
My cordially beloved fellow believers and dear brethren and
sisters in the Lord, I your poor unworthy brother-yet through
the grace of the Lord I hope to be worthy-would have written
you concerning what happened to me before the lords; but I
cannot put it all here, nor have I much to write concerning it;
for, after I had been confined for a week, they had me brought
above; then I confessed my faith; since that time I have had
very great conflict, and shall have as long as I am in this
tabernacle. I hope to write you more. Dear brethren, if you
should find any words that may lack a letter or two, or if the
spelling or writing be bad, excuse me, for my reason and memory
have lately left me much, and this through great sorrow, to
state the reason is not necessary; but my mind is firm and of
good cheer in the Lord, and I am as courageous as a young lion.
I cannot thank the Lord enough for His great goodness which He
daily sends me, sometimes by great sorrow, and sometimes by
great joy, yea, that I at times think that I am in heaven;
however, for the most part I have tribulation, the Lord be
thanked for it. Dear brethren and sisters in the Lord, heartily
pray the Lord for me; by the grace of God I shall do likewise,
according to my small ability.</p>

<p>Written by me at the Nimeguen in prison, where I unworthy
one was confined for the Word of our dear Lord, which is tried
and pure. The almighty Lord mightily strengthen my mind by His
grace, when I shall have to render up my life, who have not the
strength to finish it to the praise of my Lord before wicked
men. Adieu, my dear brethren and sisters in the Lord. I bid you
most beloved good night, to wait for you all where I hope to
get by the grace of the Lord, in the eternal joy. JAN
BLOCK.</p>

<h2>HEYNDRICK VAN ECKELO, A. D. 1572</h2> 

<p>In the year 1572 there was also imprisoned at Ghent in
Flanders, for the testimony of Jesus, a</p>

</div><div id="898"> 

<p>young man by the name Heyndrick the Shoemaker, because he
had turned his ear to the voice which calls, saying, "Come out
of her, my people, that ye be not partakers of her sins, and
that ye receive not of her plagues." Rev. 18:4. Hence he
separated from Babylon, and united with Christ, in consequence
of which he was tried with very many odious and severe threats
by the ministers of Babylon or antichrist. But the trial of his
faith, being thus purified, was found much more precious than
of gold which perisheth, though it be tried with fire (I Yet.
1:7); so that he patiently bore all for the name of Jesus. And
as no tortures could move him to apostatize, for he was founded
upon the rock, he was therefore put to death with the sword at
said place, in the Friday market, and thus died steadfastly,
and, through grace, obtained the crown of eternal glory, and
now rests under the altar, Christ Jesus.</p>

<p>This hero and warrior of Jesus Christ composed in his bonds
the beautiful hymn which is found in the Tafereel hymnbook, and
commences thus, "Since nature this doth teach me."</p>

<h2>A YOUNG MAN FROM NIMEGUEN BURNT AT<br />
HERTOGENBOSCH, A. D. 1572</h2> 

<p>After the offering up of the afore-mentioned friend of God,
Jan Block, a young man who maintained the truth of the slain
martyr, and made the same confession, traveled from Nimeguen to
Hertogenbosch, but being spied out, was apprehended by the
bailiff there, and taken to the place where it was customary to
imprison those that had forfeited their heads, and securely
confined there.</p>

<p>Not long after, the mint master of the city of Nimeguen,
having heard of it, came to Hertogenbosch, in order, if
possible, to rescue and ransom him from death, who was one of
his faithful servants.</p>

<p>To this end he paid down to the bailiff there a thousand
florins, thinking thereby to have made satisfaction and
achieved his purpose: but when the bailiff had received this
sum, he would not grant it, declaring that the prisoner had to
die nevertheless, according to the imperial decree.</p>

<p>The result was, that shortly after his trial was concluded,
his death sentence was announced to him, namely, that he was to
be executed with fire, or burned in the market place; which was
carried into execution in said city, to the heartfelt sorrow of
many spectators.</p>

<br />

<h1>JAN WOUTERSS VAN KUYCK AND ADRIAENKEN 
JANS OF MOLENAERSGRAEF, BOTH BURNT FOR 
THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, AT 
DORTRECHT, A. D. 1572</h1> 

<p>In the year of our Lord 1572, the lords of justice at
Dortrecht in Holland, laid their hands on two very meek and
dear friends Of God, who followed their Saviour, the slain Lamb
of the cross, Jesus Christ, and were not of the.least of the
membersof the church of the Lord scattered abroad in all
countries, in showing forth, as lights in this world, their
eminent virtues among this evil and perverse generation. They
were both taken out of the fold like lambs for the slaughter,
the circumstances being as follows</p>

<p>First, Adriaenken Jans' daughter was suddenly apprehended.
She resided at blolenaersgraef, in the Papendrecht district;
which was under the jurisdiction of the city of Dortrecht, and
because she was said to be a heretic, she was seized and
imprisoned in the Vuylpoort.</p>

<p>After that the plan was formed to capture Jan Wouterss van
Kuyck, who resided in the city, but frequently changed his
abode, so as not to be so easily recognized. To this end, the
bailiff, having learned where he resided (namely, in the street
leading to the Rietdijck, near the New Gate, in a room which
was reached from the street by a flight of stairs), came with
his beadles and unexpectedly, and without asking anything,
ascended the stairs, where Jan Wouterss met him just as he
opened the door. The bailiff said, since he did not know
him, "Does Jan van Kuyck reside here?" to which this good,
upright and very sincere man, not willing to speak contrary to
the truth, answered yes, adding that it was he himself.</p>

<p>These words he spoke very loudly, in order that his dear
wife, who was back in the room, should hear it and flee, which
she did: his only daughter, however, a child of only about
seven years, remained in the room and saw her father
apprehended, to which no attention was paid. The ministers of
justice immediately laid their hands upon this friend of God,
and forcibly bound him, whereupon he said, "O my lords, how you
bind me, as though I were a wicked man; however, you bind not
me, but yourselves." Then a great lamentation arose among them;
however, they proceeded, and led him, as a defenseless lamb
that is overcome by wolves, from the Rietdijck to the
Vuylpoort, about half an hour's walk through the city, where
they put him into another cell than the one in which Adriaenken
Jans was confined, though within the same walls and under the
same roof of said prison.</p>

<p>In the meantime both had to suffer much temptation,
according to the body as well as in regard to the soul; several
times they were severely tortured, stripped, and scourged, so
that almost the entire city spoke about their sufferings and
misery, as Jan Wouterss subsequently also indicated in one of
his letters.</p>

<p>The papist clergy also assailed them much according to the
soul, in order to deprive them, by many wiles and snares, of
the treasure of a true faith; but they were not able to
accomplish anything with either of them; hence they [the two
martyrs], were finally sentenced to death in ~~pen court, to be
executed with fire, on the water front of the city, near a
certain lime kiln, where now the new fortification is, between
the mill that stands upon the bastion, and the rampart;
however, with</p>

</div><div id="899"> 

<p style="font-style: normal"><br /></p>

<p>the condition, that Adriaenken Jans should not really die by
fire, but should prior to her burning be strangled at the
stake, which lesser penalty of death we do not find to have
been executed on Jan Wouterss.</p>

<p>In the meantime both prepared themselves for death with
great desire and inward joy, unable sufficiently to praise God
that they had been counted worthy to deliver up their bodies as
a sacrifice for His holy name's sake.</p>

<p>When the hour of their departure had come, both were tied
together; however, they fell upon their knees, and quietly
offered up, before they were led forth, an earnest prayer to
God the Lord, that He would strengthen them in their impending
suffering, to persevere unto the end.</p>

<p>Thereupon their mouths (for fear that they should speak
something to the people), were gagged with a piece of wood, or
some other instrument made for this purpose, and they were thus
led from the prison which presented a pitiful sight. Jan
Wouterss, however, pulled out the piece of wood, or instrument,
with one hand, which it appears was not bound, and cried with a
loud voice, "O Lord, strengthen Thy feeble servant: and Thy poor
handmaiden. It is for Thy name's sake that we have come to this
for which we have willingly prepared ourselves."</p>

<p>When he had said this, one of his fellow believers, whose
heart, as it seems, had been set aflame hereby mightily pressed
his way through the people, and coming before him, said, "Strive
valiantly, dear brother, you will suffer no more
hereafter."</p>

<p>Thereupon Jan Wouterss instantly pulled open his jacket and
showed him his breast bloody from the scourging inflicted upon
him in prison and said, "I already bear in my body the marks of the Lord Jesus;" and
he lifted up his eyes to heaven, looking longingly as it were
to the heavenly resting place.</p>

<p>In the meanwhile, before all this was properly noticed,
because of the surging crowd, said person went out of sight and
disappeared among the people; whereupon some of the servants of
justice murmured and sternly asked, where this man was. This
occurred near the swine market, close by the New Haven.</p>

<p>They went on and soon arrived at the place of execution,
where two stakes stood erected near,</p>

<p style="font-style: normal"><br /></p>

</div><div id="900"> 

<p>and around which an innumerable multitude was gathered.</p>

<p>Having arrived there, they ascended the height, or erected
scaffold, where they on their knees again quietly prayed to
God, though Jan Wouterss only was able to speak, since the
mouth of Adriaenken Jans was well gagged with the previously
mentioned piece of wood, or instrument.</p>

<p>When they had risen, preparations were first made to
strangle Adriaenken Jans, whereupon she placed herself at the
stake.</p>

<p>Then Jan Wouterss said, "This is the day of salvation." But
the underbailiff, hearing this, sternly cried, "Be silent."
Thereupon Jan Wouterss said, "Why should I keep silent; I
certainly speak nothing that is evil."</p>

<p>In the meantime Adriaenken Jans was strangled, who,
according to the testimony of those who witnessed it, previous
to her burning, remained standing at the stake a little while,
dressed in a red petticoat.</p>

<p>The servants of justice then turned to Jan Wouterss, who
cheerfully, yea, with a smiling countenance, placed himself at
the other stake, which stood close by, where he while being
fastened to it, noticed that some of his fellow believers stood
among the people, to see his end; to whom, without naming any
one, he cried aloud, "Adieu and farewell, my dear brethren and
sisters, I will herewith commend you to the Lord, to the Lord
who shed His blood for us." With this he made haste and
prepared himself for death, commending his soul to God in these
words, "O God, who art my strength, I commend my spirit into Thy
hands."</p>

<p>Then fire was set to the wood piled around him, and this
friend of God was burned alive, as it appears, with his dead
sister, to the great sorrow of many that stood around and were
filled with commiseration at the sight of it.</p>

<p>This was the end of these two dear favorites of the Lord, of
whom no one spake any evil (touching their life), but whom
every one praised on account of their virtuous walk.</p>

<h2>FURTHER OBSERVATION CONCERNING THE DEATH<br />
OF JAN WOUTERSS VAN KUYCK AND ADRIAEN<br />
KEN JANS OF MOLENAERSGRAEF</h2> 

<p>When said two persons were led forth to death, the hall bell
was rung (as was generally done at executions that took place
in the name of the city), in consequence of which a great
concourse of the common people gathered to the place of
execution.</p>

<p>The gates of the city were closed, or at least guarded, that
no one could get out or in, except with the consent of those
who kept watch there, and their names were written down after
they had stated whence they came, and whither they were
bound.</p>

<p>When they had arrived at the place of execution, which was
on the northwest side of the city, close by the water's edge,
and had ascended the height,or scaffold, some among the
bystanders called to these two valiant persons with a good
intention, and comforted them, because of their courage, in
their impending death. Jan Wouterss turned to them and exhorted
them to amend their life, and to accept the true faith,
declaring that they both were of good cheer and longed for this
holy sacrifice.</p>

<p>Thereupon he was harshly reproved by the underbailiff, which
displeased many, notwithstanding they had not attained to the
true enlightenment.</p>

<p>Both of them were then stripped of their upper garments and
also of their shoes, which were thrown among the common people,
but picked up and taken away by a certain brother named Dirck
Wouterss.</p>

<p>Forthwith Adriaenken Jans was first placed at the stake, and
strangled without delay, seeing which and recognizing her, a
certain sister of the church, whose name is well known, and who
had come in the market boat from Rotterdam, fainted away, and
was therefore not able to witness the subsequent death of Jan
Wouterss.</p>

<p>This took place as already stated. In the meantime the hall
bell was still rung, until about the time that the (so-called)
justice was finished.</p>

<p>oTE.-We went to no little trouble to obtain at the archives
of this city of Dortrecht, the old records of their
examinations and death sentences, but were not able to procure
them, as they are no longer extant; they were also, as it
appears, never put on record in the ordinary's book of criminal
sentences, which we searched for this purpose. It is our
opinion that these sentences were simply put on loose sheets of
paper and thus read in court and then destroyed, so that no
remembrance of it should remain, as it seemed that the city
should soon change her government and religion, as actually
took place about three months afterwards, through the arrival
of William I, Prince of Orange.</p>

<p>evertheless, we are not without other legal testimony in
regard to this matter.</p>

<p>Johan van Beverwijck, first physician and judge of the city
of Dortrecht, writes concerning it, in the history attached to
his description of Dortrecht, in the Dort edition, p. 348, for
the year 1572, as follows, "In the city proper there was imprisoned, accused as a
heretic, a man of blameless life and conversation, as I learned
from those with whom he resided, by the name of Jan van Kuyck
Wouterss, a skllful writer upon glass and painter., "The authorities, seeing the disposition of the people, were
not in haste with his trial; yea, the bailiff, Jan van
Drenckwaert Boudewijnss, who was still young and beardless, had
himself painted by him, in the attitude of Solomon, where he
pronounces his first sentence., "But the monks did nothing but vehemently preach against
this slackness, and hesitated not to proclaim from the pulpit,
that the bailiff had apprehended him merely. to have himself
painted by him.</p>

</div><div id="900">
<p>"Hence, this poor man, after many tortures, inflicted upon
him in order to extort from him the names of his master and
comrades; was burned on the 28th of March, A. D. 1572, on the
New Fortification, together with Adriaenken Jans, a woman from
Molenaersgraef." Thus far, Johan van Beverwijck."</p> 

<p>Hence the account of the death of these persons is certain
and reliable, nor is it doubted by any one that we have ever
heard here in this city; the welldisposed will therefore be
satisfied therewith.</p>

<p>For our light affliction, which is but for a moment, worketh
for us a far more exceeding and eternal weight of glory. II
Cor. 4:17.</p>

<h2>TOUCHING THE PERSONS THAT WERE THEN IN THE<br />
COURT OF JUSTICE, AND CONSEQUENTLY, SAT<br />
IN JUDGMENT IN REGARD TO THIS SEN<br />
TENCE; THEY WERE THE FOLLOWING:</h2> 

<p>Jan van Drenckwaert Boudewijnss, aged between twenty-nine
and thirty years, being then bailiff of Dortrecht.</p>

<p>Arent van der Mijle Sir Corneliss, burgomaster of the
community, who had gone out of office about the close of the
year 1570, but had now, the 6th of March, been re-elected.</p>

<p>Together with (according to the law of said city) nine
judges: Cornelis Sir Hendricks; Adriaen van Mosyenbroeck Sir
Govertss; Adriaen Koninck Dirckss; Arent Hendricks; Gijsbrecht
Janss, treasurer; Michiel van Beveren Sir Pieterss; Mr. Jan van
Muylwijck Sir Franss; Pieter Kool Sir Huygenss; Damas Sir
Wouterss, surrogated by Jan Adriaenss.</p>

<p>There we have extracted from the register of the lords of
justice of the city of Dortrecht, who reigned in the year 1572,
according to the account of the aforesaid Johan van Beverwijck,
in the book referred to, where he treats of the government of
the city, for the year 1572.</p>

<p>But whether they all together concurred in this sentence, or
only some of them, by a majority of votes among them, is not
expressed, nor do we consider it of much importance to know,
since it is sufficient for our improvement and edification to
have learned the unwavering faith and steadfast death of the
aforesaid martyrs, who died under their reign.</p>

<p>Concerning the death of these friends two hymns were
composed at that time, in the first of which the following
words among others were sung, touching the cause and time of
their imprisonment</p>

<p class="c3">Terstond daer yaa zijn Brieven gekomen,</p>

<p class="c3">Te Dordrecht aen den. nieuwen Schout,</p>

<p class="c3">Die seer jonk is van jaren, etc.</p>

<p><br /></p>

  <p class="c3">Right after, letters came</p>

  <p class="c3">To the new Bailiff at Dortrecht,</p>

  <p class="c3">Who is very young of years, etc.</p>
<p> In the other this is sung
concerning,their death:</p>

<p class="c3">Adriaenken Jans is eerst omgebrocht,</p>

<p class="c3">'t Welck Schout Jan Drenkwaert heeft
versocht.</p>

<p><br /></p>

<p class="c3">First Adriaenken Jans was put to death</p>

<p class="c3">Who requested the bailiff Drenkwaert.</p>

<p><br /></p>

<p>And afterwards:</p>

<p class="c3">Java Wouterss sprak, met goed bescheyd,</p>

<p class="c3">Dit is den dag der saligheyd.</p>

<p class="c3">Swygt, sprak den Underschout.</p>

<p class="c3">Waerom soude ik (seyde hy) 'tspreeken laten,</p>

<p class="c3">Myn woorden zijn niet quaed, noeh stout.</p>

<p class="c3">Adriaenken look haer oogen voorwaer,</p>

<p class="c3">Om haren Bruydegom to behagen klaer;</p>

<p class="c3">Die rust nu in den Heer,</p>

<p class="c3">En is de pyn van den brand ontgaen,</p>

<p class="c3">Aileen door sijn genade meer.</p>

<p class="c3">Jan Woutersz heeft hem aen den pael garecht,</p>

<p class="c3">Doen lachre by [van vreugd] als een vroom
knecht,</p>

<p class="c3">En beval soo God</p>

<p class="c3">Synen geest in Syne handen,*</p>

<p class="c3">Die was sijn Toevlucht, Borgt, en Slot.</p>

<p class="c3">Oorlof heeft by geroepen aldaer,</p>

<p class="c3">Aen Broeders en Susters in't openbaer,</p>

<p class="c3">Met woorden soet,</p>

<p class="c3">U wil ik den Heer bevelen,</p>

<p class="c3">Die voor ons heeft gestort sijn bloed.</p>

<p class="c3">Dees twee schaepkens zijn door, voort
tempeest,</p>

<p class="c3">Wat heeft al [haer] hjden nu geweest?</p>

<p class="c3">Sy hebben de Kroon</p>

<p class="c3">Der Martelaren verworven,</p>

<p class="c3">Die hebben sy nu voor haer loon.</p>

<p><br /></p>

 <p class="c3">Jan Wouterss clearly spake</p>

 <p class="c3">This is the day of.salvation.</p>

 <p class="c3">Be silent, said the underbailiff.</p>

 <p class="c3">Why should I, he said, forbear to speak?</p>

 <p class="c3">My words are neither bad nor bold.</p>

 <p class="c3">Adriaenken too looked forward,</p>

 <p class="c3">To please her Bridegroom.</p>

 <p class="c3">She rests now in the Lord,</p>

 <p class="c3">And has passed the fire's pain,</p>

 <p class="c3">Through His bountiful grace alone.</p>

 <p class="c3">Jan Wouterss placed himself at the stake,</p>

 <p class="c3">Then laughed for joy, as a pious servant,</p>

 <p class="c3">And thus commended his spirit</p>

 <p class="c3">Into the hands of the Lord,</p>

 <p class="c3">Who was his Refuge, Fortress and Castle.</p>

 <p class="c3">Farewell, he sweetly called</p>

 <p class="c3">To the brethren and sisters openly</p>

 <p class="c3">I will commend you to the Lord,</p>

 <p class="c3">Who shed for us His blood.</p>

 <p class="c3">These two lambs have now passed through,</p>

 <p class="c3">Away tempest!</p>

 <p class="c3">What were now all their sufferings?</p>

 <p class="c3">They obtained the martyr's crown,</p>

 <p class="c3">Which now they hold as their reward.</p>

<p><br /></p>

<p>In the same hymn is also mentioned, how their mouths were
gagged, how they prayed to God, how they prepared themselves
for death at the</p>

<p class="c8">*"In's heeren Handen, seyt den Schrijber."</p>

</div><div id="902"> 

<p>place of execution, etc.; but we deem the foregoing
sufficient for a memorial of their sacrifice.</p>

<p>NOTE.-As there have come into our hands all the letters,
testaments and confessions, twelve in number, of Jan Wouterss
van Kuyck, as also a letter of Adriaenken Jans of
Molenaersgraef, with the answer of her husband, J. A. of Dort,
all of which we have, upon perusing them, found to be full of
sound and edifying teachings we have deemed it well to add the
same here for edification and perpetual remembrance, so that
every one may see the active and living faith upon which the
afore-mentioned friends laid down their lives.</p>

<h2>THE FIRST LETTER FROM JAN WOUTERSS, TO HIS<br />
BROTHER-IN-LAW AND HIS SISTER, WHICH<br />
TREATS OF HIS EXAMINATION AND<br />
TORTURE</h2> 

<p>The abundant grace of God, the love of Christ, and the
co-operation of the Holy Ghost, be constantly multiplied with
you beloved, my dear brother-in-law and brother in the Lord,
and your much beloved wife our dear sister, with all pious
saints, who are zealous for righteousness, so that through this
zeal and desire the name of God may be magnified; for they that
are such are a light in the world, and a joy and pattern to
their neighbor, for they constantly seek to please their
neighbor in that which is good unto edification, that they may
with all the God-fearing be found diligent followers of Christ.
If we do thus, I have hope in the Lord, that we shall all get
where Christ our Lord is, who strengthens us, and helps us to
triumph, as may be read hereafter. Amen.</p>

<p>After this cordial salutation out of a pure heart, I
unworthy one, and least member in Christ, can not forbear to
write you briefly, for a remembrance to you all, and for your
comfort and encouragement; for I cannot keep this unspeakable
joy of the Holy Ghost to myself alone, but must impart
something to your love. But how can joy be a remarkable thing,
if one has not experienced anxiety; but I unworthy one have
tasted this, the Lord be glorified therein. Amen.</p>

<p>First, when I was apprehended for the obedience of Christ, I
was interrogated concerning my faith, which I plainly
confessed; but afterwards they asked for certain names, namely,
for my wife, my mother, my master, and who baptized, and
married me, and for other things. Thereupon I replied, that I
had resolved in my heart not to name any one, for I intended to
answer for myself, and would not be a traitor. The bailiff
threatened that he should make me tell, etc.</p>

<p>Having been confined there all the time during the cold
winter, I was brought, the Saturday after St. Peter's day, up
to the torture loft, where the instruments stood in readiness.
The bailiff asked me first of all concerning my master, and
then regarding others, and said, that I should also have to
tell him what he should ask me. They entreated me;they
threatened me; and said, "Though we know nearly all, and your
maEter is possibly gone already, we will nevertheless hear it
from your lips; hence do not suffer your limbs to be broken,
but tell it voluntarily; else we shall deliver you to the
executioner, and then you will have to do it." When they could
obtain nothing from me, the upper part of my body was stripped,
in the bitter cold, my hands were tied behind my back and made
fast to the loft, and also my feet were bound, and I was thus,
with my eyes blindfolded, drawn up by my hands, after I had
been entreated to have a regard to my fine trade. And he said,
that I should spare my members, my members which God had given
me, for I had no power over one hair of my head.</p>

<p>As I kept silent, I was scourged with rods, and the stripes
fell mostly on my abdomen. Having been thus treated, I was let
down and again asked; but the Lord be praised, they obtain e~d
nothing from me, though I had drank that bitter cup. I was then
drawn up again, and scourged as before. O flesh, you must
suffer now, I thought. While I was thus suspended in agony, a
halberdier ran from the loft and said, "I would rather be dead
than that man;" because he only stood there and beheld it.</p>

<p>When I did not reply in regard to anything, the executioner
said, "What, will you not answer my lords? Reply to my lords; or
have you a dumb devil in you?"</p>

<p>They asked me whether I would advise with myself until
Monday, and then tell them the truth (as they call it), in
regard to all. I kept silent and thought, why should I advise
with myself; I do not want to tell you anyway. I prayed within
myself, that the Lord should not suffer me to be tempted above
that I was able. I also openly called upon the Lord, and prayed
that He would forgive them. The jailer once thought that I was
beside myself; but I know nothing about that. The executioner
imagined he would make me tell; he had had [he said] so many of
our people under his hands, who eventually had to tell
everything; but the faithful Helper in distress kept my lips.
They then released me, and themselves gave me a respite that I
should advise with myself until Monday; but if I should then
not do it, I should be dealt with in an extraordinary manner;
and they threatened me much, so that it was dreadful to hear.
They said this was yet of the least, that it was only child's
play compared to other, future tortures. But when I looked at
myself, and beheld my body which was bloody from the scourging;
for that was certainly one of the severest pains, I thought to
myself: Is this only child's play? The jailer went away, and
said to his wife, "They will torture the man to death." In
short, I was so tortured that they had to dress and undress me.
All this the vile flesh had to bear, which has so often grieved
me, and would constantly walk in the crooked path, to gratify
its lusts; it had deserved yet more. This having taken place in
the afternoon, I was not well able to sleep in the</p>

</div><div id="903"> 

<p>night, but counted the striking of the clock all night, and
during the night I moaned most lamentably. But afterwards I
received a great, peaceful joy and gladness of the Holy Ghost,
so great that I cannot adequately describe it; because the Lord
had so faithfully kept my lips, and not suffered me to be
confounded in my confidence, which I poor, simple servant had
already before I was apprehended; but herein the Lord proved me
unworthy servant, praised be His name for evermore.</p>

<p>Now when my sufferings became noised through the city, there
were worldly people who rejoiced that I had kept my lips
sealed: and if such people can rejoice, how much more shall the
God-fearing rejoice, and praise God.</p>

<p>Further, the appointed day drawing nigh, I earnestly
prepared myself for it, and made supplication to my God, that
He would not chasten me unworthy servant according to my sins,
according to His justice, but according to His fatherly mercy,
that He would keep my lips, and alleviate the pain, as He had
done the first time.</p>

<p>When the hour approached, my flesh feared, and my soul was
afraid, for it had tried it; but I comforted myself as much as
I could, thinking, "You will not suffer hereafter, where it will
last forever; and this is but a little time." When I came upon
the torture loft, on Tuesday (it was delayed a day), I was
asked, to what conclusion I had come. I said, that my
conscience would not allow it; I could not do what they
requested.</p>

<p>They said, "You can; we take that upon ourselves." I
said, "Everyone must stand for himself." They said, "How can your
master or your wife get into trouble; for they are gone
already; what harm can it do the place where you were
baptized?""I think," said the bailiff,"that it took place at
your master's; but I do not know it for certain; and he that
baptized, and he that married you, has left the king's country,
for it was so long ago." The secretary's servant also said to
me, "Why will you conceal it? the pains are too great and in the
end you will do it after all, as those of Breda."</p>

<p>They concluded, that they would send me a learned man. who
should prove to, or instruct, me with the Scriptures, that I
could do it.</p>

<p>When they were assembled together in another place, the
bailiff asked, in what I was troubled. Thereupon the prior
said, "You can well do it, and name your neighbor, for if you
are the true people, thev will then with you receive the crown
of martyrdom;but since you are not, then also hate the wicked,
even as God hates them.".</p>

<p>O abominable expositor! whose exposition tends only to
destruction. O Lord God, convert their hearts, who thirst so
greatly after innocent blood. As we could not agree, we
separated.</p>

<p>The following day (which was Wednesday) I was brought forth
again, and asked as before. I said, that I could not do it; my
conscience did not allow it; if I did it, I think my heart
would never be at rest; hence I would rather die with a
peacefulheart, than live with a troubled conscience. The
Scriptures teach us, "Do to men as you would have them do unto
you; love your wife; love your neighbor as yourself." Matt.
7:12; 22:39.</p>

<p>The bailiff said, "You love your neighbor more than
yourself." I rejoined that one ought to lay down his life for
his brother. I John 3:16. When with many words, entreaties and
threats they could get nothing out of me, the executioner again
seized me, and I again humbly entreated my God, as before in
the first conflict.</p>

<p>I was then stripped, and my hands tied behind my back; and I
was much entreated, that I should do it. Thus I was drawn up,
but not fastened below; I expected to be laid upon the
rack.</p>

<p>When I had been drawn up and could not answer according to
their will (for the seed of God remained in me), he scourged me
upon my lacerated skin, which caused me great pain. And he
said, "How does this suit you? thus I will tear open your old
wounds;" and he threatened me in an extraordinary manner. He
then let me down again, and placed me before the lords, upon
the rack, sitting with my eyes blindfolded, as an Ecce Homo.*
And he asked. whether I would not yet tell it to my lords. I
replied, that I could not do it; hence he drew me up again,
which caused me great pain; and when he shook me, and jerked
the rope, the pain was increased. When they could obtain
nothing from me, they let me down, and gave me time for
consideration till the next day. But while I was suspended, the
bailiff said, "Your face is as sweet as that of an angel. but
your heart is harder than Pharaoh's heart." I said, "This is not
so: and the Lord will make it manifest hereafter; I have in my
simplicity sought my salvation."</p>

<p>And when the executioner began to dress me, I said to him, "O
friend, how you have treated me; you have not for a long time
thus treated a rogue, who felt it so long afterwards as I."
Then he answered, saving, "They confess, but you will not
confess: and the weather is cold, and it cannot come so
quickly."</p>

<p>When the bailiff heard this, he said to me, "You are worse
than a rogue;for these have sinned. but you have apostatized
from God, and denied Him; hence He forsakes you in your
distress." I said, "If this is true. I am a poor man; but I have a better
hope.""Yea." said he,"you are a strayed sheep: the wolves have
taken you away, and devoured you," etc. He also told me, that
we people did not get baptized until we were first tried
between two nuked women. I said. that no such thing obtained
with us. They also talked to me about David Toriss. I disavowed
him and all his adherents. The executioner said that we held
the belief, that infants that died in their mother's womb
cannot be saved. I denied it. Another said, we had to give a
pound Flemish when we were baptized. whether we had it or not.
I think the bailiff said</p>

<p class="c8">* Behold the man I John 19:5.</p>

</div><div id="904"> 

<p>this, for besides he said that in the church only three
stivers or thereabouts are given, when one has a child
baptized. I denied that too. O offense, offense! what have you
done already, whereby the innocent have had to suffer? for the
wicked soon take cause, though they should hear false
testimony, even as was the case with regard to our Lord
Himself, and Stephen. In short, the number of the infamous
things said was exceedingly great, and, I suppose that to some
the infamous speeches and their threats, are almost as grievous
as the tortures. Hence patience is especially needful, in order
to overcome in this conflict. Christ may therefore well
say, "Learn of me, for I am meek and lowly in heart; and ye
shall find rest unto your souls." Matt. 11:29. That this is a
true doctrine, I indeed now experience. He, the Lord Himself
from heaven, who was mightier than all men, suffered shame,
reproach and contempt, and thus took possession of His own
kingdom (Luke 24:26); how then should we not bear it, who are
but for a litle time subjugated by our enemies.</p>

<p>Hence I unworthy servant beseech all the Godfearing, that
you forget not, constantly to learn of Christ, for He is meek
and lowly in heart; and also possess your souls in patience,
and you shall find rest, for patience is our strength. To be
patient, and thus wait for the help of the Lord, is a good
thing; for in Proverbs it is written, that a patient man is
better or greater than a strong man. Lamentations 3:26; Prov.
16:32. Take for an example, Abraham, Jacob, Moses, the three
youths, Daniel, the seven brothers and their mother, job, the
prophets, and the end of our Lord.</p>

<p>Thus, my most beloved, trust God, and believe in Him, He
will help you since He has promised it. But if you do not trust
Him, consider whether you also believe, that God is almighty
and true, even as you believe, that by His Word He created
heaven and earth, and the sea and all that in them is. David
testifies, and rejoices in it that He is a God who is ready to
help. He further says, that He is a buckler to all those who
trust in Him. Yea. His angels encamp round about us, to keep
us. But if we do not trust Him, how then shall He help us?</p>

<p>When I again expected the hour of my temptation, I, unworthy
servant, besought the Lord my refuge, that He would also keep
me the third time, as He, through His grace, had done twice; so
that I should not be confounded, and that they should not
deprive me of my boast (that is, the good purpose of my heart
in the beginning), so that I might keep the faith in a pure
conscience. Then I hope to praise, glorify and magnify Thy holy
name, to the joy of the pious saints, and to the babes, as a
comfort and a sweet savor of life, that, smelling it, they may
thereby be refreshed and strengthened, to become the bolder in
the truth, which is the strongest of all, and will always
conquer (I Esd. 4:38); and not regard what men, who must perish
like grass, may do to us. since it is manifestly found, that
the Lord's hands are not shortened, butthat He also assists the
pious, as David testifies. For, dear Lord, if I did not
continue valiant, what a great sorrow would it be for the young
babes, and to what great blasphemy it would give rise. I
beseech Thee, O heavenly Father, have compassion on me, poor
sinful man, and remove from me the rest of the cup, if it is
possible; and if it is not possible, Thy will alone be done.
Lord, help me to triumph, for Thou knowest how the stripes of
men taste. I commit myself into Thy hands; though they
exceedingly threaten me, they have not power to harm one hair
of our head, Thou must first permit them; but Thy holy will be
done to my salvation. O Lord, lay not this sin to their charge.
Acts 7:60.</p>

<p>Now when I had thus prepared myself, I heard that they were
torturing our beloved sister, my fellow prisoner. It seemed to
me, that she was also drawn up, and let down again. When she
would not confess, she was drawn up again, and was then also
made fast below by her feet. When she had suffered the anguish
for a while, she was let down again, and carried away. Then
thought I: Now comes my turn; now they will come and take me
poor lamb out of the pen, to the slaughter. While thus waiting,
I much consoled myself, thinking, how soon a man is unmade; for
it seems to me that she scarcely suffered the torture half an
hour.</p>

<p>When I had thus with Abraham delivered up my only son, that
is, my flesh, the Lord suddenly interposed and turned my
tribulation into great joy. In the first place by this, that
the Lord had also kept the lips of that weak lamb; and in the
second place. that it seems that they are satisfied with the
sufferings which I have undergone before my sacrifice.</p>

<p>I have written this, not to cast you down, but for the
reason that you saints of God should rejoice with me in the
Holy Ghost. and help me thank the Lord, that He has so
faithfully helped me; and that you may know how wonderfully God
works in His elect; as also a pious witness of Christ,
Karstiaen L., has testified in his letter, and Joris the dyer,
who was a witness of the truth with me here; and would not name
those that were dead, for he said in himself, "If the devil
comes upon the first step, he also comes higher." Oh, I think
one loses his strength, in a measure, thereby; for I thought,
though they do not know my master, and though I also know that
he is gone, together with my dear, beloved wife, and others,
yet they would not be satisfied, they are determined to torture
me, and I want to be silent in regard to the one as well as to
the other; it will now be made manifest, how the Lord helps
those that trust in Him. Oh, what a joy is the victory through
Christ; now my faith in Christ is tried, my fear of God, and my
confidence which I had already before I came into bonds, my
love to God and to His holy church, as the gold in the furnace
and upon the touchstone; for other trials can be borne
tolerably well, when one has enough and can go where he
pleases; but when one, with job, is touched in his skin (Job
2:4, 5) .</p><br />

</div><div id="905"> 

<p>when the skin is lacerated, so that the blood flows, and
this is repeated after four days, that touches the quick. O
thou daughter of Zion, thou bride of the Lamb, be not dismayed,
the Lamb shall gain the victory; be of good courage in the
short conflict that is set before you, for all things are
promised to him that overcometh; he that continueth faithful
unto death shall receive the crown of life, and shall not taste
eternal death, or the everlasting torment. I do not know that
my torture lasted over two hours in all; but the threatening,
the contempt, and the tormenting lasted somewhat longer. My
most beloved, is this not a small torment? should one therefore
forsake the truth? should one therefore deny the Lord, and
burden his conscience by mentioning names? nay, when one is
nevertheless frequently subjected to suffering. Oh, no; the
Lord Himself fights the battle for us; to Him alone be praise
forever. Amen.</p>

<p>Thus, you beloved and saints of God, who have become
partakers of the heavenly calling through Jesus Christ, despond
not, nor be afraid of them that kill the body, for they have no
power over the soul. I unworthy one, have espied for you the
help of the Lord; hence I bear witness of Him, that He is a
faithful helper in distress, as is written of Him; yea (He says
by the prophet), though a mother forget the son of her womb,
whom she brought forth, yet will I not forsake nor forget thee.
Isa. 49:15; Heb. 13:5.</p>

<p>Hence, all you that believe the Lord's promise, continue
steadfastly. Oh, that no one from despondency may keep back for
any calling or ministry of the saints, according to ability;
for no one may live to himself, or withhold himself; so that
the work of the Lord may always be carried on with readiness;
and help bear one another's burden; if it goes thus, it is a
joy, and the work can be carried on without murmuring; and
know, whatsoever good thing any one does, the same shall follow
him. Eph. 6:8.</p>

<p>Excuse me for writing in general; I hope that the
fainthearted will hereby gain a little courage and confidence
through my bonds; yea, I hope, that the afflicted will become
more cheerful because such great help is found with the Lord,
who is nevertheless not seen, for I testify to you with the
apostle, "Though our outward man perish, yet the inward man is
renewed day by day. For our light affliction, which is but for
a moment, worketh for us a far more exceeding and eternal
weight of glory; while we look not at the things which are
seen, but at the things which are not seen." II Cor. 4:16-18.
Now I can write and testify to the same with regard to this,
that the suffering is light, because it is short; for when all
my tortures were over, I do not know that I felt as much pain
afterwards as I once suffered for a time from a little ulcer,
of which my dear wife well knows, and that I had to bear and
found no promise for bearing it. But if we bear this suffering
for the Lord's sake, all the principal promises are ours; yea,
there are no more glorious or greater promises than these,
amely: that they who submit to the sufferings of Christ, and
through Christ overcome, to them the crown of life is promised;
and there is also this testimony in our hearts, that we are not
bastards; yea, we shall be honored and crowned by Christ
Himself. For this holy estate I know that I am not worthy; but
the merciful, good God does nevertheless count me worthy to
bear this reproach for His name's sake; praise to Him forever.
Amen.</p>

<p>Herewith I will conclude this, asking you to excuse my
simple letter; and I will commend you all, and particularly my
most beloved brother-m-law, and my dearest sister, to the Lord,
who is able to finish the good work which He has begun in you,
that you may receive a full reward with Jesus Christ our Lord,
whither I will go before, and await you there, that we may then
live together in eternal joy.</p>

<p>To this end may the good God grant His grace, so that no
one, because of this little torment, may forsake the way of
eternal life, and thus become like the fearful and fainthearted
servants (Judg. 7:3), who cannot go into battle with Gideon,
who do not believe in God, nor can set their seal to it, that
God is faithful, almighty, and true. What there is promised to
such in the Scriptures is manifest, namely, eternal torment, as
to sorcerers and idolaters. Rev. 21:$. What will it avail them
to have borne the name of a Christian, if one does not continue
steadfast? then we must ignominiously perish, like the ten
unbelieving spies. Num. 14:37. What does it avail to have been
delivered out of Egypt, if one does not believe; for the
unbelieving will all be destroyed? What did it avail Lot's wife
to have gone out of Sodom: for she looked back? Hence, all you
beloved saints of God, strive valiantly for the truth unto
death. And always have such a mind in you; and the Lord shall
fight your battle, and you shall then, if you wait with
patience for it, rejoice in the end, even as I do now. For a
confirmation of the truth, read the holy Scriptures; there you
will find how the Lord fought for Israel. for Daniel, Gideon
and Jehoshaphat, and for others; though they had but little
people, yet such great numbers were slain, that they could not
take away the spoil in three days. II Chron. 20:25.</p>

<p>Furthermore, it is necessary and verv profitable, to write
comforting letters and send them to the miserable, forsaken
ones, for they are greatly comforted thereby. Let everyone do
his diligence in this resoect, as much as possible, and put
forth your best endeavors herein. and pray the Lord for
suitable means. without detriment to any one; likewise also, to
visit them: but above all, constantly to prav for them, and to
lift up holy hands with Moses, till thev have finished the
fight, and overcome agair.st their flesh. against the stint of
sin, and against the rulers of the darkness of this world.
wherein Satan works. Hence let everyone lay to heart what the
apostle says, "Remember them that are in bonds,</p>

</div><div id="906"> 

<p>as though ye were in bonds." Heb. 13:3."When one member
suffers, the other members suffer with it." I Cor. 12:26.</p>

<p>Herewith adieu on this earth to all the God-fearing; be of
good courage; for courage lost, battle lost, I cordially greet
you all in the Lord, but particularly my dearest brother-in-law
and his beloved wife I thank you heartily for all your great
friendship.</p>

<p>Commenced the last Thursday in February, and finished the
first of March. I unworthy servant bear the marks of the Lord
above both my hands and on my body; the name of the Lord be
praised forever.</p>

<p>By me confined as a prisoner in the Vuylpoort, for the
obedience of the gospel, I said to the jailer, "Though I could
knock the jail into pieces with my fist, I should not want to
do it, lest he should get into trouble on my account.</p>

<p class="c5">JAN VAN KUYCK</p>

<h2>THE SECOND LETTER FROM JAN WOUTERSS, WRITTEN TO HIS BROTHER AND HIS SISTERS</h2> 

<p>The eternal and merciful God grant you, my only brother and
my beloved sisters, His grace through Jesus Christ, that you
may together get a desire, taste and longing for your
salvation, unto the end of your life. Oh, that this would
happen, dear Lord, what a joy would it be to us hereafter;
which I hope will be so, that our old, venerable beloved
father, and our venerable mother and their children, will find
one another in life eternal. Amen.</p>

<p>In the first place, I hope in the Lord, that you with me
have received a desire, taste and longing for salvation. Hence,
I now exhort you a little, that you will increase therein,
since the Lord has granted you His grace, and opened your eyes,
so that you can discern good from evil.</p>

<p>Thus, my dearest, beloved brother, since you have received
this grace, that you know and believe (as I trust you do) that
God hates evil and loves righteousness, thank the good and
omnipotent God for it, and particularly, that He has delivered
us from the hands of Satan through Christ Jesus, and has
according to His mercy begotten us again by the word of life,
and has helped us in this acceptable time; in which time He has
caused His saving grace to shine upon all men; and you, my dear
brother, have taken heed to this saving grace, you have
received, as I trust, this light, which is Christ Jesus. The
Scriptures testify that to them that have received Christ (that
is, who believe in Him), power is given to become the children
of God. John 1:12. Hence suffer yourself constantly to be
governed. directed and guided by Him, through His Spirit; for
these are the true children of God, that are led by His Spirit;
they are Christ's.</p>

<p>Now, my dearest brother, be careful all your life, to guard
well this good and most precious treasure: that you may live of
it, and ever followwhat the saving grace of God (namely, Christ
Jesus who is our light), teaches us.</p>

<p>In the first place, the saving grace of God teaches us to
deny the ungodliness of this world, and its lusts and desires;
as Paul says, "And be not conformed to this world; but be ye
transformed by the renewing of your mind, that is, after the
mind of Christ." Tit. 2:11, 12; Rom. 12:2. If you do this, you
will walk in the light, and not in darkness, wherein the world
walks. Beware, my beloved brothers, of the works of darkness,
and have no fellowship therewith, but always separate from
them, and touch not the unclean thing, namely, all evil; and
you shall be a child of God and remain one if you abide in
Christ unto the end. Eph. 5:11; II Corinthians 6:17.</p>

<p>I unworthy one imprisoned for His name's sake,
affectionately beseech you, always adhere to the Word of the
Lord, and you shall never fall, and whatsoever you shall ask
the Father in His name, that will He give you; though one
thereby incurs suffering, we must not faint on that account,
for it is made manifest thereby, that the. way is narrow, and
the gate strait, which leads unto life eternal. But this
suffering is transient, and if we suffer with Christ, we shall
also be glorified together; for the sufferings which men can
inflict upon us, are short and light, and work for us a far
more exceeding and eternal weight of glory; while we look not
at the things which are seen, but at the things which are not
seen; for though our outward man perish, which at all events
must perish, yet the inward man is renewed day by day. II Cor.
4:17, 18, 16, and when the faith has been kept, and we have
overcome, all is sweetened by Him who strengthens us, which is
Christ; He helps us to triumph; this I experience best now that
I am in the trial; to Him be praise forever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>But, my dear brother, think not that something new has
happened to me, just as though it had not always been thus.</p>

<p>Read of righteous Abel, and you will understand the Word of
Christ, that the servant is not better than his lord. Matt.
10:24; John 13:16. Dear brother, the head, which is Christ,
suffered Himself; the members must follow; and it is a special
sign of love, that He sends me this chastening, to prove me,
whether I indeed fear, love, and trust Him from the heart. In
short, I deem it to be for my salvation; His holy will be done
to my salvation. Amen.</p>

<p>Hence I now declare to you, my dearest brother, that this is
and shall ever remain the only right truth, for which I now
suffer for a little while. Thus, my dearest brother, diligently
read the Word of the Lord with devotion, and meditate well upon
it, and always pray the Lord in every concern, with prayer and
supplication in the Spirit, with perseverance; for if you live
according to the Word of the Lord, you shall prosper, and never
fall (II Pet. 1:10) , for in the Word of the Lord is our light,
which is Christ Jesus. Let us follow Him,</p>

</div><div id="907"> 

<p>and we shall get to Him where He is; by our High Priest
Christ Jesus, there I will await you, my dear wife, my
daughter, our father, and mother, and sisters, if you all die
in the Lord, namely, if you adhere to the truth unto the end
and follow the Lord, as I hope that you with all the saints of
God will do, I will. go before, and herewith write to all of
you in this short time. Adieu; the Almighty God grant you all
His grace, that you may always have good courage to obtain your
salvation through Christ Jesus; and be diligent in love, and be
a pattern to one another in every good work unto life
eternal.</p>

<p>Thus, my only, dear brother, I have now written you a
little, for your remembrance, and to stir up your minds (II
Pet. 3:1) , and for your consolation, that you fear not men,
but only the Almighty God, who is eternal. As for man, his days
are as grass: as a flower of the field, so he flourisheth. For
the wind passeth over it, and it is gone. Ps. 103:15, 16; Isa.
40:6. Men are perishable; they cannot harm a hair of our head,
unless the Lord permit them. And He will not permit them more
than we are able to bear and keep the faith.</p>

<p>Oh, it affords such peace, when one by the help of the Lord
has kept his lips. Praise ye, all my friends, our strong and
faithful God, who kept my lips in the first torturing. I hope
and trust that He who helped me first is able to help me again,
for He has promised it to us unworthy creatures (His words are
yea in Him; He is a faithful helper in distress, as David
says, "With the Lord help is found, he is our shield, our
fortress, and the strength of the poor"). But we must also
trust Him; who was ever confounded, that trusted in the Lord?
Hence cease not to seek your salvation, and be not slothful in
your business, but be fervent in spirit, patient in
tribulation, and continuing instant in prayer. Rom. 12:11, 12.
But if you feel no fervor in you, pray the Lord for it, and He
will give it you, if you only sincerely seek the kingdom of God
and His righteousness, as I trust you do. But beware of
trusting in the world; possess your souls in patience; the Lord
can easily in due time give you a God-fearing person for a
companion; but first diligently pray the Lord, to so order it
that you will first unite with the God-fearing. Write my
brother-in-law a letter some time, and he may be prompted to
write you also, and to advise you wherein you may need advice.
I thank you for the friendship which you have hitherto shown
me.</p>

<p>Written the second day after Matthew, in Lent, on which day
I was again suspended twice and once scourged; but, my only
brother, the strong God again kept my lips. Hence I pray you,
rejoice with me, and praise the Lord, since I have great joy
now; and be not dismayed in your mind because my flesh has
suffered a little while; for now the good heavenly Father has
tried my faith, as gold in the fire, whether I would also trust
and fear and love Him in the severest conflict. And now that He
has found me faithful, from one tribulationto the other, so
that through the grace of God I have overcome the rulers of
this world (wherein I have greatly rejoiced from the heart),
and this by the prayer of the faithful, and the co-operation of
the Holy Spirit, henceforth there is laid up for me the crown
of eternal life, to receive the same from Christ through grace.
Thither I will now go before (and first put off this mortal
clothing of the flesh), with the prepared burning lamp; for I
have kept, and trot denied, the faith, nor love, nor Christ.
The faith is the oil, a pure heart and conscience the wick; and
fervent love .the light.</p>

<p>Do you also daily adorn yourself therewith, to meet Christ
our Bridegroom; and take possession of the promised land, that
is, the everlasting kingdom of God. But be not afraid on the
way because there are many enemies, robbers and ~volves in the
wilderness, namely, in the world; and be not dismayed on this
account, for I have passed through it all by the help of the
Lord, and have spied out the country in advance for you and
many of the Godfearing, so that I can now write you that you
need not stay back on account of the peril, and this because
the Lord Himself conducts our conflict; He fights for us, and
He is certainly the strongest; for He said to Abraham, "Fear
not; for I am thy shield, and thy exceeding great reward." Gen.
15:1. Was this said to Abraham alone? Paul says, it is written
for our learning, that we through patience and comfort of the
Scriptures might have hope. Rom. 15:4.</p>

<p>Consider former examples, how God fought for Gideon, David,
Jehoshaphat, and others; the people [the hostile army] were
slain without their having to lift up a hand. Oh, my only dear
brother, put your whole trust in the Almighty, for with Him
help is found, He is a true helper in distress, He does not
forsake His own in all their tribulations; so that we may say
with the apostle, "If God be for us, who can be against us? He
that spared not his own Son, but delivered him up for us all,
how shall he not with him also freely give us all things?
Romans 8:31, 32. If He has manifested such great love towards
us, how should He not preserve us in every extremity.</p>

<p>Believe this, that the good God is our debtor; if we
unwaveringly continue to walk in His way, and cleave to Him,
and not forsake Him, He will also not forsake us.. This is
certainly a sure promise; but if we deny Him, He also will deny
us. II Tim. 2:12; Luke 12:9. O how thoughtless, how unwise,
yea, how unmerciful toward their poor souls, are they, who,
because of this little, short suffering, through fear, forsake
the way of life and choose another way according to their own
mind, to escape the cross of Christ, and comfort themselves
with a vain consolation in the way which they have found
according to their own views; whose end is destruction. But, my
only dear brother, do not follow these, for they that are such
do not believe that God is almighty and true. Hence the
Scripture says, "Woe unto the faint-hearted 1 for they be-</p>

</div><div id="908"> 

<p>lieve not; therefore shall they not be defended. Woe unto
them that persevere not! how will it go with them when the Lord
shall visit them? (Sir. 2:13, 14), yea, their part will be with
sorcerers in the lake that shall burn forever." Thus, take
courage with Joshua and Caleb; but you must firmly believe in
God's promises, even as you believe that God has created heaven
and earth by His Word; and you shall then devour all your
enemies like bread, and through patience finish your conflict
with the help of God, and take the promised land by force, for
the violent take it by force. Num. 14:9; Matt. 11:12.</p>

<p>But, dear brother, the apostle testifies, and I unworthy one
also, that we wrestle not only against the rulers of the world,
but also against the spirits that are under heaven (Eph. 6:12),
and as Christ says, that in the latter days many false Christs
shall arise. Matt. 24:5, 11. This I have also espied for you;
for in the time of my faith many false prophets or false
Christians have assailed me; now they came with this fair
appearance, now with another. But the Lord, who would have all
men saved, delivered me from all this and I cleaved to the Word
of God, as I heard and accepted it in the beginning; and my
faith weakened not, though many apostatized who had seemed to
be the most valiant. See, thus our faith is tried in many ways,
and besides by the daily conflict that never ceases; for it is
a lasting conflict; the Spirit wars against the flesh, and the
flesh against the Spirit. Gal. 5:17. Herein I find myself
troubled the most; my own sinful flesh was my most inveterate
enemy, which has cost me many a bitter tear. Satan thereby
sought to sift me as wheat; but now falling, now stumbling, I
have come thus far through the grace of Go( f; for I always
struggled up hard by the grace of the Lord. But what was it, I
would so fain have been perfect, but this weak flesh was always
in the way; which must now suffer, and I hope to offer it up as
a burnt sacrifice.</p>

<p>Thus, my dearest brother, I have explained to you a little
what conflict a Christian must wage, namely, against flesh and
blood, against false spirits, who have laid their subtle arrows
upon the bow, to shoot in secret at the pious. Hence take unto
you the armor of God; that you may be able to stand against the
subtle assaults of the devil; and be girded with the girdle of
truth: above all, take the shield of faith, wherewith you shall
be able to quench all the fiery darts of the wicked; and have
your feet shod so that you may always be well prepared for the
Gospel of peace; and take the helmet of salvation, the living
hope, and the sword of the Spirit, which is the Word of God;
and pray always with all prayer and supplication. Ephesians
6:13-1$. Behold, with these weapons of the Spirit we can
overcome, and then the crown is promised us. But forget not
that Jesus Sirach says, "My son bast thou sinned? do so no more,
but ask God for pardon for thy former sins. Flee from sin as
from the face of a serpent: for if thoucomest too near it, it
will bite thee: the teeth thereof are as the teeth of a lion,
slaying the souls of men. All iniquity is as a two-edged sword,
the wounds whereof cannot be healed." Sir. 21:1-3. Paul, too
says, "Mortify your members which are upon the earth;
fornication, uncleanness, inordinate affection, evil
concupiscence, and covetousness, which is idolatry. In short,
live according to the Spirit, and you shall not fulfill the
works of the flesh." Col. 3:5; Galatians 5:16. To this end the
good God grant His grace, that you may grow up in faith, in
love, and in the knowledge of our Lord Jesus Christ, so that
you may become a perfect man, unto the measure of the stature
of the fullness of Christ, and thus wait for the coming of
Christ. Eph. 4:13.</p>

<p>O my dear brother, take care for your salvation; the time
here is so short, and eternity is at hand. O heavenly Father, I
humbly beseech Thee, that Thou wilt keep my only brother from
all evil, and sanctify him in Thy name through Christ Jesus,
and ever guide him by the Holy Spirit, that we may rejoice
together hereafter. Amen.</p>

<p>Adieu, my only brother on this earth; with Christ I will
await you. I wrote the first page just after I had been
tortured; hence it is somewhat badly written. Now my hand is a
little better, but I still have the marks of the sufferings of
Christ; His name be praised forever.</p>

<p>This I have written you in my bonds, the second day of
March, A. D. 1572'. By me your only brother, unchanged in mind,
imprisoned for the testimony of Christ: hence be of good cheer;
the faith is kept, I have striven unto blood, in the Vuylpoort
at Dortrecht.</p>

<h2>THE THIRD LETTER FROM JAN WOUTERSS, TO THE<br />
CHURCH OF GOD AT DORTRECHT, WHO WERE SCATTERED EVERYWHERE FOR 
THE TESTIMONY OF CHRIST</h2> 

<p>To the scattered saints and the others at Dortrecht, grace
and peace from God our heavenly Father, and from the Lord Jesus
Christ, and the cooperation of the Holy Spirit, ever be
multiplied to you all, for consolation on your pilgrimage, so
that ,you may be patient in your tribulation, that patience may
have her perfect work in you, so that you may neither weary nor
faint in that which you have accepted for the salvation of your
souls, which has come and been brought to us by Christ; therein
we are glad, so that we can rejoice in our temporal affliction.
Remember Christ's prophecy, where He says, "Ye shall weep and
lament, but the world shall rejoice; and ye shall be sorrowful,
but your sorrow shall be turned into joy, which no man shall be
able to take from you." John 16:20, 22. O dearest, if we could
enter the kingdom of God with ease, how could we speak of the
narrow way and the strait gate; but because of the tribulation
we can say this, that one must walk in the same, and press
through the strait gate, and take the kingdom by force, through
much affliction and</p>

</div><div id="909"> 

<p>adversity; which confirms the word that the servant is not
better than his lord. If our Head had to take His own kingdom
through much suffering and contempt, if they called the master
of the house Beelzebub, should they not call them of His
household likewise? Luke 24:26; Matt. 10:24, 25.</p>

<p>In order to pass through all this, and to continue steadfast
unto the end, trust in God, and believe His Word, even as you
believe that He has created heaven, earth, the sea, and what
therein is; and He will help you, and fight the battle for you,
so that you will not be confounded. For if God be for us, says
the apostle, who can be against us? He that spared not His own
Son, how shall He not with Him also freely give us all things?
The almighty, good God grant His grace to this end, that you
may neither waver in nor doubt God's promises; and fear shall
depart from you, and you will not care what men can do to you,
and will possess your souls in patience till the day that shall
comfort you. Amen.</p>

<p>After this cordial wish to all you beloved, I unworthy
servant could not forbear, though my gift is small, to write
your love a little, to strengthen the older, and to give
courage to the younger, so that every one may persevere
steadfastly in the conflict that is'set before us, always to
make sure, by the fruits of your faith, your calling and
election; for so an entrance shall be ministered unto you
abundantly in the everlasting kingdom of our Lord and Saviour
Jesus Christ. II Pet. 1:10, 11. What more would you have?</p>

<p>Therefore, thou beautiful daughter of Zion, fear not, since
your entrance is prepared so abundantly.</p>

<p>O thou fairest among women, therefore the filthy wrinkles
that disfigure thee must be put from thee. Cant. 1:8. O thou
fair bride of Christ, constantly adorn thyself more and more
with the wedding garment of righteousness, and also trim your
lamps with glorious faith and imperishable love, that you may
not lack these, as did the foolish virgins, but that you may
ever possess them abundantly, that thereby the light of Christ
may shine in you, and be manifested by you, to the praise of
God, the edification of your neighbor, the salvation of your
souls, and as a light to the world, and for a testimony unto
them. Although they then hate you, because the bright, morning
star, Christ Jesus, has arisen in your hearts, bear it, and be
not surprised at it, for Christ, who is the light Himself, was
hated and cast out by the darkness before you. II Pet. 1:19;
John 1:5.</p>

<p>It does not care for your person, but because the truth is
in you, which the darkness, that is the world, tramples under
foot, wherefore you become a prey to every one. But fear not
therefore; O thou warrioress, go on to your promised reward;
the truth that is in you shall overcome, for it is the
strongest. O thou fair queen, remember at all times, how
loathful and unwashed thou didst lie in thy blood as an
outcast, and that the most mighty, richest and eternal King,
the fairest above all men,chose thee, washed thee, purchased
thee with His own blood, and accepted thee as His queen. And if
we always think of our redemption, it is, or ought to be, an
admonition, to cleave to the royal Bridegroom alone, and not to
forsake Him through wantonness or presumption, and run to
others; for he that forsakes Him, him He will also forsake. His
jealous love cannot bear or tolerate it, that one loves another
more than Him; such a one is not worthy of Him. Oh, not so; not
for anything; though you be surrounded as a lily among thorns,
and though the bramble has usurped the government of the world
(Cant. 2:2; Judges 9:14), cease not thE.'efore to give forth
your sweetness, the fair fragrance of the lily, your beautiful
grapes, and your fatness as olive branches; so that everyone
may be found a sweet savor of Christ in His calling; the poor,
that they be diligent in their labor, if they can earn a stiver
or a half, so that they may have a clear conscience before the
Lord.</p>

<p>Again, that those who have abundance give abundantly; but
those who do not have it in abundance, that they communicate
the same with a faithful heart. If this is done, and every one
proffers his assistance, the ministers can serve with a joyful
heart, especially if there are few ministers.</p>

<p>Further I write, unto you, you threescore valiant men (Cant.
3:7), always have strong courage, always be well prepared with
the sword of the Spirit at your side, to protect this lovely
bride from all harm or nightly terror, bringing into captivity
every thought that exalteth itself against the obedience of
Christ. II Cor. 10:5.</p>

<p>Guard well, with a faithful heart, this pleasure garden of
the Lord, that the cunning foxes that creep in may not nestle
therein, that the rooting swine do not come and dig it up,
whereby the young sprouts often lose their strength and wither.
Psalm 80:13. Though you then may sometimes have to meet false
brethren, turn not back on that account, nor faint; for if you
turn back, what should the others do?</p>

<p>Hence be of strong courage in the Lord; since the Spirit of
the church r..s chosen you for the work of the Lord, offer your
heads, and take your life into your hands, and go forth in the
name of the Lord. If they threaten you, think, "We are in the
hand of the Lord; you are but dust and ashes; the Lord will
preserve us." Think, "We are not better than our brethren."
Though it then comes to pass, that one's time is fulfilled,
that his course is finished, that he must be tried as gold,
before kings, lords, and the rulers of the darkness of this
world, to praise the name of the Lord; go forward nevertheless,
and take for your example those valiant heroes, as Abraham,
Moses, Joshua, Caleb, Samson, Gideon, David, the prophets and
the apostles and consider the former times, how mightily the
Lord trampled upon the necks of their enemies, as Joshua said
to his valiant men, that the Lord should do to all that did set
themselves</p>

</div><div id="910"> 

<p>against them; hence He said, "Fear not." Josh. 10:25.</p>

<p>Most beloved, excuse my simple letter; though it is very
simple, yet, whatever its defects, think that I hereby manifest
in a measure my boldness and my affection towards you, which, I
unworthy one, have had and still have towards you; yea I have
this confidence by the grace of the Lord, that no one shall be
able to separate me from the great love which I have towards
you and the Lord.</p>

<p>Hence I am of good cheer in all that comes upon me, for I
find our Lord very faithful; that He is a true helper in time
of need, who does not forsake His own; for 1 have now by the
help of the Lord striven unto blood, kept the faith, and
received great consolation in my heart, so that I can rejoice
in my suffering, and this through the aid of your prayers, and
by the co-operation of the Holy Spirit. Yea, I cannot tell you
the great joy which I now have because the Lord has kept my
lips.</p>

<p>Hence I beseech you all most affectionately, rejoice, and
praise the Lord with me, that He has so faithfully succored His
poor servant, and has alleviated my pain, and made a way to
escape, so that I was able to bear it.</p>

<p>O most beloved, is this not a great consolation, that the
holy and good God has made Himself our debtor, and has promised
us (mark, by promising an obligation is incurred),
saying, "Though a mother forget the son of her womb, yet will I
not forget thee?" says the Almighty Lord, if we do not forsake
Him, and do not Sell our birthright as lightly as did Esau, for
a little life; concerning which Christ says, "Whosoever shall
seek to save his life shall lose it." Luke 17:33. Alas! he
loses it badly that-will not find it again; but well does he
lose it who will again find an imperishable one.</p>

<p>This is certainly the promise of Christ, this He has merited
for us by His righteousness and suffering; but we must also
faithfully strive unto death for the truth, and purify our
souls by obedience to the truth, to persevere in this short
conflict, "Therefore take unto you the armor of God, wherewith
you shall be able to quench all the fiery and subtle darts of
the wicked. Gird your loins with the girdle of truth; put on
the breastplate of righteousness; have your feet shod with the
gospel of peace, so that you may be ready in all things; above
all, take the shield of faith, and the helmet of salvation
[that is, the living hope] and the sword of the Spirit, which
is the word of God; and always pray with all prayer and
supplication in the Spirit." Eph. 6:13-18; Luke 12:35; I Thess.
5:8. With these weapons you can overcome all your enemies, in
patience and meekness.</p>

<p>To this end you have many testimonies in the Scriptures, and
also I unworthy one, your known weak brother, bear witness,
that these are the true weapons; for I can now write of this
because of the victory that I have gained through Christ
Jesus,who always helps me to triumph. To Him alone be praise,
honor and might forever and ever. Amen,</p>

<p>Herewith I will commend you my dearest fellow helpers,
brethren and sisters to the Almighty God and the rich Word of
His grace, who is able to strengthen you all, and to finish the
good work that He has begun in you, and to bring you into His
everlasting kingdom. Amen.</p>

<p>Herewith I bid you all adieu in this evil world full of all
wickedness, with Christ Jesus our bridegroom I will await you,
and there meet you again in fullness of joy; the Lord grant His
grace hereunto. Amen.</p>

<p>Finally I humbly make this request, that if I have grieved
any one by word, conduct, or deed, you will heartily forgive
me; I likewise do so from the heart, but I wish that it had
been better with me in this respect. Farewell, be of good
courage.</p>

<p>Written by me, your weak brother and humblest member,
imprisoned for the testimony of the Gospel of Christ, at
Dortrecht, on the 3d of March, in the year 1572.</p>

<p class="c5">JAN WOUTERSS.</p>

<p>I was tortured a week ago Saturday, and again the following
Wednesday. Thus I now bear in my body the marks of the
sufferings of Christ; which I might have easily escaped, had I
been willing to tell what was demanded of me. I should in that
case have acted contrary to the Scriptures, contrary to love
and my conscience, and should die with a troubled heart; many
hearts should have been grieved; but now I trust that many will
rejoice with me, and be glad and bold, and praise God.</p>

<p>Thus, let all of you firmly resolve in your hearts to do
those things that are of good report, honest, and pleasing to
God (Phil. 4:8); call upon the Lord for strength, and be
assured in your hearts, that He hears your prayer. Ps. 145:19.
Present to Him in your prayer His own promises, and you shall
not be confounded, for He hears the prayer of the poor, says
David. Also rejoice together, that our enemies obtained nothing
by the torture from our dear sister, my fellow prisoner.
Therefore praise the Lord, ye saints. Ps. 147. I unworthy one
cordially greet you all in the Lord, in His name, with the love
and peace of Christ. I thank you all for your Christian
fellowship. O most beloved, let that which you have heard and
accepted from the beginning abide in you, and beware of those
that would take it from you; for I unworthy one testify that
you stand in the unadulterated truth; fulfill the same in the
fear of God, and you shall have peace.</p>

<p>Writen by me, in bonds,</p>

<p class="c5">JAN WOUTERSS KUYCK.</p>

<h2>THE FOURTH LETTER FROM JAN WOUTERSS, TO<br />
HIS WIFE</h2> 

<p>Grace and peace from God our heavenly Father, through Jesus
Christ our Lord and Saviour, and the co-operation of the Holy
Ghost constantly be</p>

</div><div id="911"> 

<p>multiplied in you my most beloved wife, for consolation in
your pilgrimage, for the strengthening of your faith, for
comfort in your tribulation, to the praise of God, and the
salvation of your soul. Amen.</p>

<p>After this my cordial salutation to you my chosen sister and
most beloved wife my love towards you is great, but my love for
the eternal truth is greater yet; the same helps me to overcome
all my enemies. In this great victory I greatly rejoice, since
I have now been in the conflict twice. For the sake of this
victory: in which Christ alone, who is the genuine truth, helps
us so valiantly to triumph, heartily rejoice with me, and
magnify and thank the name of the Lord. I now know how the cup
of suffering tastes, but I did not know that the good God works
in us with such wonderful power; for I received such peaceful
joy in my heart that I was amazed. This was shortly after I had
been tortured; yet I was greatly threatened that I should be
tortured again the following Monday, but I thought that the
faithful God could keep my lips also a second time; and I
prayed and entreated Him greatly to manifest it on me (as it is
a small matter for Him), that I should not be confounded in my
first boasting, or purpose of my heart, so that my neighbor
should not be grieved, nor any one open the mouth of slander on
my account.</p>

<p>And the eternal good God kept my lips in the second
torturing; and I was threatened again, but my determination
never weakened, such grace did the Lord give me; but when I
earnestly prepared myself for it, and with Abraham offered up
my only son, that is, my flesh, that he should do His holy will
to my salvation, the Lord turned my anxiety into joy; yea, that
my eyes overflowed for gladness, because the Lord had kept the
lips of our sister, my fellow prisoner, and, in the second
place, that they were satisfied with my suffering. I also, a
few days before I was tortured, had received the glad news that
you were able to say with your mouth, though you could pull me
out with your arm, you should not do it if I were valiant or
resigned; which rejoiced my heart, that the good Lord thus
strengthens and comforts you by His Holy Spirit. The eternal,
good God be praised forever, that He shows to us unworthy ones
such great tokens of mercy and love. O my dearest lamb, how
shall we be able sufficiently to thank the Lord for it? Yes, I
have joy in my heart, that the Lord has counted me, poor man,
worthy to suffer so much reproach, and contempt, and so many
threats and stripes. Herewith the Lord proves me, even as He
proved His dearest chosen ones, as to whether I fear Him,
sincerely, trust Him in the greatest distress, and love Him
from the heart. My heart leaped up in my body, as it seems to
me, for joy, because we have such a good dear God. I thought
that I loved Him, but now that my skin is touched, He proves
this best Himself. Job 2:4, 5.</p>

<p>But, my chosen, be not dismayed on this account; this vile
flesh has merited yet much more, but theLord chastens us
according to His mercy. Thus my faith is tried as gold in the
furnace; now all the glorious promises of the Lord belong to
me; henceforth there is laid up for me the crown of eternal
life; yea, our King, Christ Jesus, will honor me Himself. Luke
12:37. Oh, alas! of this I know myself that I am unworthy; but
our Lord has obtained it from His heavenly Father, that He may
do this to us, our joy may be full, and that we should console
ourselves with His promises in our tribulation.</p>

<p>O how inconsiderate are all those who lightly esteem, yea,
reject all these glorious promises because of this brief
suffering. Yea, what is this suffering when it is over, it is
not to be compared with the glory that shall be revealed in us.
Rom. 8:18. I wrote the foregoing letter yesterday, and now I
have just been before the bailiff and two judges and the
secretary. The bailiff asked me whether I would not yet tell
the truth. I said that I had done so."Yes," said he,"as much as
you wanted to." Then the demand of the bailiff was read to me,
setting forth that I had apostatized from the Christian
Catholic faith or Roman Church, and had been rebaptized by the
Anabaptists, and married my wife. That having been admonished
by divers learned men in regard to this error, I persisted in
the same; and he further added, that the royal decree
prescribed that I should be punished by being burnt alive at
the stake; but if I recanted, the sword, possibly also the
churchyard should be my portion.</p>

<p>Then I replied that I had not (or never) apostatized from
the Christian faith; nor do I know [said I J any Anabaptists; I
have been baptized but once upon my faith; infant baptism I do
not regard as baptism, and when I was a child I did as a child,
even as my parents led me.</p>

<p>Further, I desire grace from the Most High, for if I
apostatized from my faith, I think that I should be eternally
lost; but if I adhere to it I hope to be saved by the grace of
the Lord.</p>

<p>All this was written. I told them, that they should do as
they expected to answer for it before the Supreme Judge. I
demanded that they should tell me whether I had wronged any
one; that I might defend myself. Then he said that I had
seduced my wife, and my child, and had helped to seduce still
others, and had held meetings in nooks and corners by night,
and at unseasonable times, contrary to the royal decree. I
said, "Who was injured thereby?" And I was led away again, for
they could not bear my words My fellow prisoner was also
brought forward then, but she too remained valiant.</p>

<p>I now hope that we shall soon be released from all our labor
and vexation. Thus, my dearest upon this earth, I hope that you
shall soon be rejoiced still more, when you will hear of my
deliverance. What more can they do? they connot harm the soul;
what more have they then, than that which must remain here? It
is certainly very profitable</p>

</div><div id="912"> 

<p>to me to be present with the Lord. Though this earthly house
or habitation perish, we expect a better in heaven, which is
eternal, yea, which is like unto Christ's glory. What greater
eternal joy shall we then have, when we shall shine like sparks
among stubble, yea, like the sun; then shall we leap
<i>like</i> calves of the stall for joy. Wisd. 3:7; Matthew
13:43; Mal. 4:2.</p>

<p>Hence comfort yourself with these and other promises, and
hold fast that which you have heard from the beginning, as I
trust with all my heart that my most beloved lamb will do.</p>

<p>And when I have fallen asleep, then, my most beloved wife
and dearest sister, you are released; conduct yourself in your
widowhood to the praise of the Lord, to the edification of your
neighbor, as a pattern to our most beloved, only daughter, and
as a light to the world, and to your soul's salvation. Endure
and persevere in the unadulterated truth wherein you stand;
though you be tried so that one conflict succeeds another,
count it all for your salvation; always prepare your heart for
patience, and the day shall come that will comfort you.</p>

<p>The promises are thus, "Here tribulation, hereafter joy."
Further, consider how joyfully you would have taken my hand,
had my parents loved the truth; but now that you and I have
seen the day that they love the truth, it is a special joy.</p>

<p>Hence I pray you, show them as much honor and friendship as
lies in you, for my, for our little daughter's, and for the
truth's sake, as I trust you will do; and if you engage in any
traffic, see that you keep yourself 'unspotted from the world.
Jas. 1:27. If they assail you with words, so that you are
constrained to tell how much the goods cost you; tell it
simply, without adding any further words, by yes, or by no for
that would not become us. But if you do not find yourself
strong enough herein, abandon that traffic, for you can get
along with a little; if it is not fat it is lean; the godly are
soon satisfied. But if you continue in any business, take care
that it does not get too large, lest your heart become
surcharged, so that you can ill perform your prayers. Luke
21:34.</p>

<p>Thus, remember what the Holy Scriptures counsel you for the
best, and you will prosper according to the soul, as I trust
you will. And continue instant in prayer, as becomes holy
widows; pray for faithful laborers, for all the saints, for
prisoners, for apostates, for kings, princes, the rulers of
this world; especially when you see sects or contention arising
in the church, which must be, in order that they that are tried
may be made manifest. Although the elders should lose courage
(which God forbid), continue in earnest prayer to God, as you
have an example in the holy widow Judith (Jud. 8): and always
adorn yourself with a meek and quiet spirit, which will adorn
you more than all jewels, as Peter and the Scriptures teach you
(I Pet. 3:4), and as you are taught of God Himself; and possess
your soul in patience, and you shall find peace in the Lord,
and in your heart. Be alsoof good courage your chief Captain
and best Bridegroom still lives, and He will keep and feed you
and our only daughter; for though 1 should have to wander about
with you for a while yet, it must all come from Him
nevertheless. My most beloved, I have shown you a little
faithfulness in my bonds, by having applied my hands to labor,
so that I might not be an expense to you, and that you might
have a little left to meet you in your labor; which is a great
joy.</p>

<p>For I hope and trust concerning you, my dear, chosen, most
beloved wife, that you will not change your state; for the good
God has given you a special gift for which praise be to Him
forever.</p>

<p>But not, my most beloved, that I would cast a rope around
your neck, as though I would forbid you it. Oh, no; the apostle
counsels you what is best. I Cor. 7:40. I married you for;life,
and thank you as affectionately as I can for your dear, good
companionship, faithfulness and . love, of which I deem myself
in a great measure unworthy. Now the only good, merciful God
has called me, unworthy one, to a higher state, and you can
offer me, your most beloved on earth, for no higher state to
the Lord. Thus console yourself with the others, for your
tribulation shall last for a short time only.</p>

<p>Thus I will write you, my dearest, adieu in this evil world,
and will commend you to the faithful Almighty God, for He alone
is able to keep you from the evil, and to bring you into His
eternal kingdom.</p>

<p>O holy Father, I, Thy weak servant, humbly beseech Thee in
my bonds, that Thou wilt keep my most beloved wife, and my only
daughter, and all the God-fearing, from the evil, and sanctify
them in Thy name. O heavenly Father, hear me, unworthy one,
through Jesus Christ; that we may all enter into Thy eternal
joy, and no one remain without. To this end, may the good God
grant His grace. Amen.</p>

<p>Adieu, my only daughter; your beloved father shall be
crowned ~a king by our dear Lord. Hence be resigned and be an
obedient daughter, and diligently read the holy Scriptures.
Live according to them, and we shall meet again and rejoice
forever, without end. Amen.</p>

<p>Finished on the fourth day of March, A. D. 1572, by me, your
dear husband, imprisoned for the testimony of the Gospel of
Christ, to the praise of God. Amen.</p>

<p class="c5">JAN VAN KUYCK.</p>

<p>I salute you cordially in the Lord with the love and peace
that shall endure forever.</p>

<h1>THE FIFTH LETTER FROM JAN WOUTERSS, TO HIS WIFE AND DAUGHTER</h1> 

<p>The unfathomable grace and mercy of our heavenly Father, the
abundant love of our Lord Jesus Christ, and the co-operation of
His Holy Spirit, always be multiplied to you beloved, my chosen
on earth, for consolation on your pilgrimage, for the</p>

</div><div id="913"> 

<p>steadfastness and confirmation of your faith, to the praise
of God, and to the salvation of your soul; that you may always
be a light in this world, and also edify your dear, only
daughter, and your neighbor, in that which is good; so that you
may always be like unto fruitbearing branches, for to this are
all believers appointed. if another decreases and becomes
weary, do you constantly increase, and let your increasing
become manifest before God and men, knowing that the good works
will follow you; and it will be an ornament to your wedding
garment when you shall appear before the supreme Bridegroom;
when the slothful, the sleepers-who are sufficiently awake to
seek that which is perishable only too much-shall stand naked,
then you shall be gloriously appareled.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dearest sister above all men weary not, though
you must still walk in this pilgrimage; always trim and fill
your lamp in simplicity with oil, and keep it constantly
burning, and thus with patience wait for your Comforter and
Bridegroom. Then He shall for a little season of faithfulness
bid you a glorious and joyful welcome; for He has opened the
way, for you and all believers, who use diligence, and add to
their faith, virtue; to virtue, knowledge; to knowledge,
temperance; to temperance, patience; to patience, godliness; to
godliness, brotherly kindness; to brotherly kindness, charity.
If these things be in you, and abound, they make you that ye
shall neither be barren nor unfruitful in the knowledge of our
Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ. But he that lacketh these things
is blind, and cannot see afar off, and hath forgotten that he
was purged from his old sins. Hence Peter further admonishes:
Wherefore the rather give diligence to make your calling and
election sure; for if ye do these things (mark), ye shall never
fall (mark still more): for so an entrance shall be ministered
unto you abundantly into the everlasting kingdom of our Lord
and Saviour Jesus Christ. II Pet. 1:5-11.</p>

<p>Oh, it is very evident from this, how one falls, and how one
gets into the way of life; hence, diligence is a good thing.
For David says, "Thou hast commanded us to keep the precepts
diligently!" Psalm 119:4. And Paul says, "Be not slothful in
business, but fervent in spirit." Rom. 12:11. He further
writes, "These things I will that thou affirm constantly, that
they which have believed in God may excel in good works." Tit.
3:8.</p>

<p>Oh, how well it goes when one heeds this! He further also
says, "O that it were the will of God, that those whom I have
instructed might minister to the furtherance of the truth of
the Gospel, and become diligent in the works of eternal life."
O they who lay to heart these divine Scriptures of admonition
and warning, will not easily grow weary; when others will halt,
they will go on with a faithful heart, as long as they can draw
breath, and constantly make no account of what they do, because
of the divine nature that is in them, which love is without
measure. Namely, when one considers in his heart, that Christ,
by His great agony of death made us dead men alive, and
aelivered us from the power of the devil, and translated us
into the kingdom of Christ; that fie has taken and chosen us
poor sinners from so many thousands, and enlightened us. W hen
they shall go into eternal fire, we shall go into everlasting
joy, and our vile body shall be like unto Christ's glory. Oh,
who can tell that great joy which shall endure forever?
Everyone who truly tastes said love and goodness of God does
not easily weary in well doing; the same, Paul also says, shall
reap without ceasing. Gal. 6:9. And Christ says, "A good tree
bringeth forth good fruit." Matt. %:N. He also says, "'They that have done good shall arise unto the resurrection
of eternal life." John 5:29; Dan. 12:2. O my very dear and
beloved wife, though I must now leave you, and see you no more,
yet by the grace of the Lord I hope to see you in the
resurrection, but with a glorious and incorruptible body.
Therefore, my dearest lamb, always go on in virtue, according
to your ability, as I trust with all my heart, my dearest, you
will do. Hold fast the truth wherein you stand through the
grace of God; for it is the rignt truth, and there shall no
other be found; of this I am sure in my heart. Hence be firmly
rooted therein, that you may be able to stand against all
tempests, and not fall through persecution, or through being
robbed of your goods, or your beloved, nor through false
Christs, of whom, alas! there are many abroad, who disturb and
deceive many hearts and minds, under the semblance of truth,
which is adulterated by them; so that much bitterness has
sprung up, and love has waxed cold in a very great measure.</p>

<p>Yea, I fear, that it will go yet as Christ says, "When the
Son of man shall come, will he find believers on the earth?"
Luke 18:8. O my most beloved wife, I can no longer watch over
you by the help of the Lord, nor strive for you; strive now for
yourself, with earnest prayer to God. He will not forsake you,
though I must leave you. Trust firmly in Him, and always adhere
unwaveringly to the doctrine of Christ. Fulfill that which you
have heard and accepted, in the fear of God, and you shall have
eternal life; for God is able to perform and to accomplish the
same good work which He has begun in you, without delay.</p>

<p>Finally, be strong in the Lord, through the power of His
might, and be well armed against all adversity, and you shall
triumph by the help of the Lord. Set your affection on divine
things, and overcome that which is human. Col. 3:2. And I
beseech you as affectionately as I can, be resigned in the
Lord, and constantly be mindful of your redemption, and of the
treasure that surpasses all treasures, which has been given you
out of grace; and have in constant remembrance the glorious
promises; and I hope by the grace of the Lord, that the bitter
cup and the bitter water Mara, which you must now also drink
for the Gospel's sake, will be, in a measure, sweetened. For,
my dearest,</p>

</div><div id="914"> 

<p>you are certainly well aware that these are our meat and
promises, and that ever since we accepted the truth we expected
to become a spoil to everyone; for the servant is not better
than his lord, and we must through much tribulation enter into
the kingdom of God. And consider, from Abel to the present
time, how the righteous had to suffer. The Scriptures must
certainly be fulfilled; for if I were not apprehended, nor
another, how should the number of the martyrs under the altar
be fulfilled? for they wait for the fulfillment. Hence console
yourself, my dearest, and comfort one another; for I suppose
when one weeps the other weeps, too. For I can comfort you with
the holy Word of the Lord; and I am still more assured that I
am not a bastard, because the merciful Father has been pleased
to chasten me poor sinful man, and to receive me unworthy one
as His dear son; His will be done. Therefore pray, and cause
prayer to be made for me, that I may with my death praise the
name of the Lord, to the edification, emboldening and joy of my
neighbor, for a light to the world, for the awakening of those
who are still in the sleep of sin, and to the salvation of my
soul. Amen.</p>

<p>I must also inform you, my dearest on earth, that it is a
great alleviation to me in my bonds, that you are not in
custody. Oh, I also cannot fully thank my God on account of our
poor little daughter, who saw her father bound, as though he
were a murderer; however, the strong and faithful God gave me
such grace, that I was hardly frightened at all, only I said, "O
my lords, why do you bind me thus, as though I were a wicked
man?""Oh," said they,"you inflict this upon you yourself;"
hence there was much lamenting among them. When he asked me
concerning you, I spoke in a very loud. tone to the bailiff, in
order that you should flee, so greatly was I concerned for you.
The Lord be praised, that He so graciously chastens me.</p>

<p>O dearest lamb, you were certainly very near, as may be
imagined, if one leaves the cloak behind and flees without it.
Now, dearest, be of good cheer; true, you leave more yet; but
if you leave much you shall receive much. And always possess
yourself in patience, and you shall by the grace of the Lord
overcome everything that comes upon you; for patience is a
special gift of God. Patience is the Christian's strength; this
I, unworthy one, have discovered indeed, and I also experience
it best in my bonds which I suffer for Christ's sake. I cannot
fully thank His grace for His consolation. I experience how a
man feels that is not imprisoned for any evil doing. I
experience the Lord's faithfulness, which He has promised His
own. I trusted in His Word, that He would keep it, before I was
apprehended; for the Lord says, "Though a mother forget the son
of her womb, yet will I not forget thee." Isa. 49:15. He is
certainly the strength of the poor, .and a true helper in time
of need.Oh, I was in hopes that I should alone seal it with my
blood; but another weak lamb has fallen into the hands of the
wolves, and this very strangely. One would have thought that
she was certainly not in much danger. She came into my master's
house, and was held. When my time was fulfilled, I also fell
into their hands; I believe that the good God has ordered it so
for my salvation; for He knows better than I, what is necessary
for me; hence His will be done. O my dearest, be also resigned
thus, and offer me up, your most beloved, into the will of the
Lord, as is our daily prayer; for I had many times before
prayed the Lord, that He should give me, and let come upon us,
what is for my salvation. I therefore see that the Lord wants
to take me away from the evil to come, and to bring me into
rest; for he that loves the Lord and the church from the heart
is. seldom without sorrow of heart, but frequently in travail.
But now, I am also ofttimes, it seems to me, like a woman in
travail, when I think of your and my daughter's grief, and of
the sorrow of my old father and my old mother; then I indeed
could cry, but the Lord gives me consolation again by His Holy
Spirit; praise to Him forever. Amen.</p>

<p>I further cannot forbear, but must greatly thank you, my
dearest, only wife, for having been such a dear, faithful wife
to me, for more than nine years; the time has passed away so
rapidly, that I am surprised. I have had such joy in my heart
because of your love, that I could never fully thank the Lord
for His grace; yea, I thought, that though the hairs of my head
and the grass of the earth were tongues, I could not fully
thank His goodness; I should remain His debtor. But however
much I loved you, I had to limit it, in order that if it should
come to what it has now come, I might overcome the parting.</p>

<p>Again, I loved my daughter rather more than I showed; I
dared not set my affection too much upon her, in order that
when I should have to part from her, as the Lord has ordered in
regard to me, unworthy one, the bitter parting should not
overcome me. But now that the Lord has called me to this state,
I will commit you both, my dearest lambs, to the Lord of lords,
and beseech His grace to keep you both from the evil, and to
bring you into His everlasting kingdom. Amen.</p>

<p>But, alas! I have often regretted, and do still regret, that
I, miserable man have not walked more holy and perfectly with
you. Do as I would, I always fell far short; so that I did not
struggle through all the years of my faith without stumbling or
falling. But the rich God, seeing my good intention, according
to His mercy lifted me up again, for He is willing to forgive,
as I also gladly forgive and His promise is sure, "If we forgive
men their trespasses, he will also forgive us our trespasses."
Matt. 6:14. When I thus felt my own deficiency, it caused me to
keep myself in humility, and to bow myself under the mighty
hand of God, and it</p>

</div><div id="915"> 

<p>was an admonition to me to be zealous in my calling. While I
was in a good determination, the Lord of lords came, for which
eternal praise be to Him; and I often pray Him to forgive those
who named, delivered, and apprehended rne; I forgive them all.
O my beloved wife, this I must also heartily pray you yet,
that.you will likewise thus forgive them that have sinned
against me, and caused your grief; for if you forgave not, I
think you should prevent the Lord your and my God from
forgiving your debt; hence I beseech you to forgive it from the
heart. And pray for them that afflict you, and you will be a
good sister in Christ. Make God your debtor, and He will also
forgive your debt; for we need daily forgiveness, because we
are frail.</p>

<p>But I am also daily afflicted in this, that our dear
church-many poor souls-are scattered so, and must wander about
in foreign countries, yea, some of them having nothing to lay
hold of, and yet the poor children must be fed. Oh, there is a
lack of cheerful givers in this distressing time.</p>

<p>Nothing special further for this time; but I commend you now
and forever to the Lord, and to the rich Word of His grace, who
is so able to keep you from the evil, and to bring you into His
everlasting kingdom. Amen. I greet you most affectionately in
the Lord with the kiss of love and peace, and this in the
heart, as present with you in spirit. Bid our beloved daughter
much good night in my, name., and tell her to comfort her
mother, and if she is an obedient daughter, learns diligently
to read, and then also to write, and then helps her dear mother
to gain a livelihood, I shall love her. Greet much in my name,
in the Lord, all the God-fearing that ask you concerning me;
tell them to be of good cheer all of them, and to hope and
trust in the Lord, for His hand is not shortened, this I now
realize. Let therefore no one fear mortal man, but much rather
the immortal God. I have confessed the faith, not sought my
life, freely and openly confessed Christ before this sinful
people, for a testimony unto them, that they may have no excuse
to make in the day of Christ.</p>

<p>The bailiff asked me, whether I would not renounce my faith;
that they would then give me back my liberty, -so that I could
gain a livelihood for my wife and child as before, "you are yet
a young man," said he,"you can raise children yet, and increase
the world." I answered, that .I did not wish to renounce. The
bailiff said, "Do you not want to live then?""Yes, my lord, but
I will not renounce my faith for anything in the world." In
going he said that I erred; he would prove to me from history,
that the doctrine which I said in the time of the apostles was
called the sect of the Nazarenes, is openly contradicted; you
must see that our faith has existed for so many centuries, and
been handed down from generation to generation. I said,"I do
not look at the years, but at the truth." Thus we parted.</p>

<p>Go not around much with my letter, lest I lose my liberty [of
writing]; the Lord be praised for it. If any one feel
constrained by love to write a little, send it; put into it, a
little color, and soil it a little, and it will be noticed the
less. Write me how you and my daughter are; send it with color,
or some spice, if it be only fennel seed, or a piece of cake;
it shall be acceptable to me. Salute cordially your brother and
his wife.</p>

<h2>THE SIXTH LETTER FROM JAN WOUTERSS, TO HIS<br />
ONLY DAUGHTER IN PARTICULAR</h2> 

<p>The eternal, almighty, good God, who by His word created
heaven and earth, and the sea, and all that therein is, be with
you. Because I sought Him in my simplicity, for the salvation
of my soul, I am imprisoned by His enemies, which I will
forgive them.- But though I am imprisoned, and have also
suffered for it, 1 have never yet regretted that I sought, in
my simplicity, my salvation; for unto salvation I am created
through Jesus Christ, unto good works, that I should walk in
them, and hereafter arise to everlasting life, Eph. 2:10; John
5:29. Therefore, my only daughter, attend to the instruction of
your beloved father. Thus, what I tell you according to the
Scriptures is this, "Consider the wickedness of the world, the
learned with the magistrates, and their adherents, how they
shed the innocent blood; they are called spirituals and
Christians." Hence I beseech you, my dearest daughter, do not
follow them, for they walk not in the right way, to this I bear
witness. And read the holy Scriptures, and when you have
attained your years, consider and ponder it well; and pray the
Lord for understanding then, and you shall be able to discern
good from evil, lies from truth, the way of perdition, and the
narrow way that leads unto eternal life. And when you then see
pomp, boasting, dancing, lying, cheating, cursing, swearing,
quarreling, fighting and other wickedness, such as drinking to
intoxication, kneeling down before wood, stone, gold, silver,
or bread, think then, "This is not the right way, these are not the works of
Christians, as the holy Scriptures teach. Such works proceed
not from the Spirit of God, but from the spirit of Satan." The
Scriptures testify that they are Christ's who have the Spirit
of Christ or are led by the same. Rom. 8:9, 14. And in order
that you may be found a true Christian, do not follow those
people; follow them not, though they allure you in an inviting
manner, and promise you fine things; do not regard that, but
depart from the broad way on which they are, that you do not
become a partaker of their eternal plagues. Consider the
examples of the Scriptures in regard to this, which happened in
the first world; for all who had departed from God, and did not
believe Noah's preaching, and did not regard his words, were
drowned. Likewise, Sodom and Gomorrah, who daily vexed
righteous Lot; they who would not go out with him, were burned.
Thus it shall also go with those who do not believe the true
Noah, that</p>

</div><div id="916"> 

<p>is, Christ Jesus; for He preached it in this world, saying
first, "Repent, for the kingdom of heaven is at hand." Mark
1:15. Even as Noah had warned and preached, before the flood
came, so Christ preached, and caused His apostles to preach,
repentance, and still causes it to be done daily, by rye,
unworthy one, your beloved father, and by other servants of
Christ. But what does it avail them? not many repent; they
remain with the great multitude; we are lightly esteemed, for
we are a plain, small and unlearned people. But Christ could
well foresee the hardness of the people; hence He says in the
Gospel, "As it was in the days, or times, of Noah; they were
eating and drinking, marrying and giving in marriage, until Noe
entered into the ark; so shall it also be in the coming of the
Son of man," that is, Jesus Christ. Matt. 24:37. Then shall the
day of the Lord be as a burning oven. Mal. 4:1. Crying and
lamenting will then avail wicked, unbelieving men nothing, for
then there shall be no time to obtain grace. But now is the
acceptable time, the day of salvation, now is the time of
grace, the jubilee of the Lord, until the terrible day of the
Lord comes. Isa. 49: 8; Deuteronomy 15:1. Then He shall say to
those who would not believe the Gospel, but followed the
multitude: Depart, ye cursed, into everlasting fire, prepared
for the devil and his angels. But to those who followed Him in
this life unto the end, He shall say, "Come, ye blessed of my
Father, inherit the kingdom prepared for you from the
foundation of the world." Matt. 25:41, 34.</p>

<p>Thus, my dearest daughter, lay it to heart, despise it not,
for it is of great importance to you; and diligently search
(when you have received understanding from the Lord) the holy
Scriptures, and you will find, that we must follow Christ
Jesus, and obey Him unto the end; and you will also truly find
the little flock who follow Christ. And this is the sign: they
lead a penitent life; they avoid that which is evil, and
delight in doing what is good; they hunger and thirst after
righteousness: they are not conformed to the world; they
crucify their sinful flesh more and more every day, to die unto
sin, which wars in their members; they strive and seek after
that which is honest and of good report; they do evil to no
one; they pray for their enemies; they do not resist their
enemies; their words are yea that is yea, and nay that is nay;
their word is their seal; they are sorry that they do not
constantly live more holily, for which reason they often sigh
and weep. Let not this, however, be the only sign by which you
may know who follows Christ; but [they are] also these, namely,
who bear the cross of Christ, for He says, "If any man will come
after me, let him deny himself, and take up his cross daily,
and follow me." Luke 9:23. For He has said, "If they have
persecuted me, they will also persecute you." John 15:20. But
now someone might say, and persuade people, that He said this
to His apostles. But the apostle Paul declaresto them and says
that all that will live godly in Christ Jesus shall suffer
persecution. 11 Tim. 3:12. The prophet, also, says that he that
takes up the truth becomes everyone's prey; for that which is
pure and clear cannot come forth. Isa. 59:15. Hereby you may
understand, my dear daughter, who follow Christ, to be saved
through Him. Beware of sin, that you do not commit it; and join
these cross-bearers, that you may come to Christ, who bore the
cross for us; for we must follow His footsteps, and be like our
Lord, the disciple like his master; and as we suffer with Him,
so shall we forever rejoice with Him. But, my only daughter,
whom I love from the heart, I beseech you, fear not this
present suffering, so that you do not, on this account, forbear
to seek your salvation; this would be too great a folly; for
now that I have suffered the same, I say with the apostle, that
the suffering which comes upon us for Christ's sake is light
and temporal, and works for us an exceeding weight of glory.
For as the sufferings of Christ abound in us, so our
consolation also aboundeth by Christ, and He always helps us to
triumph, so that we keep the faith in a pure conscience; for it
is blessed, says the apostle, if we endure stripes for well
doing. Hence rejoice, that your dear father has suffered and
endured threats, contempt and stripes for well doing; I say for
well doing, because I would not with the world walk the broad
way to everlasting torment, which all shall receive who do not
turn and follow Christ in the narrow way. The Word of Christ is
always the judge; hence let no one think hard of me. John
12:48.</p>

<p>In the second place I also suffered because I loved my
neighbor as myself, and would not name him. Be therefore
resigned, and always think that your beloved father did not
suffer as a thief or murderer, but as a Christian, of which I
need not be ashamed, nor need you; but let them be ashamed
themselves who do evil; one needs not be ashamed of that which
is good. Though we are despised of men, .who perish like grass,
and vanish as a vapor, what care we for mortal man: if w e only
please the immortal God, all is well, for He will praise us.
The praise of men is perishable. Hence we do not regard it, and
look not at the things which are seen, but at the things which
are not seen; after these we follow and strive, and choose with
Moses rather to suffer affliction with the children of God,
than to live in the lusts of the world, for we have respect to
the reward of Christ. Thither I will now go before, and wait
for you and your dear mother a little while. Hence I pray you
very affectionately, my dearest, only daughter, take the words
of my letter to heart, so that you seek your salvation with all
your heart, in following Christ. He will help you as well as He
helps me, and has helped others who lived in my time and
before. Christ is the way to eternal life; hence keep His
commandment, which is life everlasting. John 12:50.</p>

</div><div id="917"> 

<p>I further pray you, my dearest daughter, that you first of
all love and obey your dear, beloved mother. If your beloved
mother gets to be an aged woman, always show her great honor;
and always do your best with her; it is a commandment of the
Lord which has a promise. For if you do not love your dearest,
beloved mother, how can you love our dear Lord, whom you do not
see. But I hope and trust, my only, dear daughter, that you
will do the best; and I was very .glad to hear in my bonds,
that you conduct yourself so well, and are so resigned. Thank
the Lord, that He has spared your beloved mother, so that you
should get along better. But, as the time of the saints, of the
prophets, of Christ, the apostles, and other saints, is
fulfilled, so my time is also now being fulfilled, according to
the providence of God, that I should henceforth rest in Christ.
Thus I go the way of the prophets and apostles, believing what
the holy Scriptures say, that Christ Jesus alone is our
Saviour, and seeking to be saved by His blood, His merits, and
His sufferings alone. Many evil things are said of us, of not
one of which are we guilty; but we must suffer all for Christ's
sake, and take His kingdom by force, for the violent take it by
force. Matt. 11</p>

<p>12. Our enduring all things is our power and force, and by
patience, meekness and longsuffering we</p>

<p>Tt through everything by the help of the Lord. ayMe grant
you, my beloved daughter, and your dearest mother, the same
patient, good spirit, to overcome in all tribulation which you
have together, or may yet have, for the name of the Lord, to
His praise and your soul's salvation. Amen.</p>

<p>Herewith, adieu in this wicked world,- and be of good cheer
together. Written and completed this 4th of March, A. D. 1572.
By me your beloved father, imprisoned at Dortrecht for the
obedience of Christ, and this to the praise of God. Amen.</p>

<p>O merciful heavenly Father, who hast so specially chosen and
loved me unworthy one, I, who am but dust and ashes, commend to
you my dearest wife and my dearest, only daughter.</p>

<p>Written by me in bonds, at Dortrecht.</p>

<p class="c5">JAN WOUTERSS KUYCK.</p>

<h2>THE SEVENTH LETTER FROM JAN WOUTERSS, TO<br />
HIS FATHER AND MOTHER</h2> 

<p>The eternal merciful God, full of all comfort, grant you, my
dearest, beloved father, and my dearest, venerable mother, His
grace through Christ, and confirm the love of you both through
His Holy Spirit; so that you may pass this short time to the
praise of God, as a light. to the world, a pattern to your
children, and to the salvation of your souls. Amen.</p>

<p>After this my cordial wish. I beseech and exhort your love,
that you henceforth yield your members as weapons of
righteousness, and not as formerly in the old man; but mortify
the old Adam; that is, put off the old man with his evil deeds,
and put on the new man, in true righteousness and holiness,
asthe holy Scriptures teach, which serve us to eternal life.
Rom. 6:13; Col. 3:9, 10.</p>

<p>For His commandment is life everlasting. And remember, how
diligently you walked in the commandments of men, by which they
have made the commandment of God of none effect for themselves;
they also worship God in vain, teaching and observing the
commandments of men, which have no promise in the Scriptures,
but shall be rooted up, because our heavenly Father has not
planted them. Yea, the same is accursed by Paul. Gal. 1:8. Oh,
that you may now also be found very diligent, yea, much more
diligent yet, in the unadulterated truth of God, which is
revealed to you both through the grace of God, through Christ,
in your old age.</p>

<p>Oh, this is such a great joy to me, that the Lord has spared
you both so long, and that I have seen the day that my beloved
father, and my beloved mother, and my only brother (I hope the
best in re gard to my dear sisters) have had their blind eyes
enlightened, so that they are now able to distinguish light
from darkness, that is, evil from good, and are determined to
forsake that which is evil, and do what is good.</p>

<p>If you go on together in this, and persevere unto the end, I
hope that we shall rejoice with one another in the resurrection
of life.</p>

<p>When the righteous shall be raised up, Oh, consider what
great gladness and joy we shall then have, when the dear
father, mother, and their children, shall hear the voice of our
Bridegroom, saying, "Come, ye beloved, and possess the kingdom
of my Father." But, dearest father and mother, brother and
sisters, you must first think that Christ before that
said, "Narrow is the way and strait is the gate which leadeth
unto eternal life." As the prophet Esdras testifies, who speaks
of a city full of all good things, to which leads a way which
is but the width of a man's footstep; on one side is water, and
on the other fire; how is one to receive this city for an
inheritance, except he first pass through the strait? II Esd.
7:6.</p>

<p>Hence Christ, the supreme Prophet (who could well foresee
the wickedness of the world) said, "Ye shall be hated of all men
for my name's sake, and this because they have known neither me
nor the Father." Matt. 10:22; John 16:3. He further
says, "Because I have chosen you out of the world, therefore the
world hateth you, for the world loveth his own." 15:19.
Further, "If they have kept my saying, they will keep yours
also; if they have persecuted me, they will also persecute you;
if they have called the master of the house Beelzebub, how much
more shall they call you?" 15:20; Matt. 10: 25. For the servant
is not better than his lord; hence, he that would follow Christ
in order to get where He is must deny himself, daily take up
his cross, and follow Him in affliction, for He further
says, "In the world ye shall have tribulation: but be of good
cheer; I have overcome the world." John 16:33. Ye shall (He
also says in the same chapter) weep and lament, but the world
shall re-</p>

</div><div id="918"> 

<p>joice; and ye shall be sorrowful, but your sorrow shall be
turned into joy, which no man shall be able to take away.</p>

<p>From this it is sufficiently obvious, that the way is very
narrow for the flesh, which must remain here; this must be
ventured, or one cannot be worthy of being a disciple of
Christ.</p>

<p>But I trust that with Jacob we shall all desire the
beautiful Rachel, namely, the kingdom of heaven, but this
cannot be, we must first have Leah with her running eyes. For
our trying, also the head was tried, who had done no sin; how
then should not the members be tried? for then only He
thoroughly sees whether a man fears, loves and trusts Him from
the heart; whether he does not love his life more than his
salvation. Concerning this necessary trial to which many saints
of God were subjected, we have many examples in the holy
Scriptures; as Abel, Jacob, Moses, David, job, the three young
men in the furnace, Daniel, Susannah, the seven brothers with
their mother, many prophets, apostles, and many saints after
them, and also in my tithe.</p>

<p>Now it is my time, the Lord be praised, for I know that I am
unworthy that I should place myself among this number, but the
good, merciful God counts me worthy, to fulfill the number of
the martyrs who rest in Christ, and are waiting for their
number to be fulfilled by those who should also be slain as
they, for the testimony of Christ which was in them, and is in
me, through Christ; which Christ has always, from the beginning
of the world, been despised, evil spoken of, and cast out.
Therefore I suffer for a little while; otherwise there is
nothing for them to take exception to in me; they know nothing
evil to allege against me, the Lord be praised. Hence I suffer
now with Christ, as a Christian, for well doing, that my faith
may be found much more precious than gold which pensheth. Thus
does God try His chosen; but in time of need He faithfully
helps us; this (how wonderfully God works in His chosen) I have
experienced in my distress. Yea, I have very great joy, that He
has kept my lips from beginning to end, this alleviated my
sufferings, when my filthy, stinking carcass (evil in its
nature) was suffering, being suspended and scourged two
different times; but now that it is over, I have joy in my
heart. The first time that I was tortured, was the last
Saturday in February; and the other the Wednesday after. But,
dearest father and mother, be not dismayed on this account, but
rejoice with me, that we have such a strong God, who so
faithfully helps us; for He fights our battle, He will not let
us be confounded. For, consider the ancient times, whether any
one was ever confounded that trusted in Him; for He hears. says
David, the cry of the poor, and their heart is sure that His
ears attend unto their prayer. Thus, firmly believe God's Word,
and trust in Him, and He will keep His promise; for this you
must know, that though the outward man perish, yet the inward
man is re ewed day by day. Moreover, our temporal affliction is
brief and light; of this I can now write; and it works for us a
far more exceeding weight of glory, while we look not at the
things which are seen, but at the things which are not
seen.</p>

<p>We endure the visible, and wait with joy for the invisible,
eternal joy, in firm confidence and a living hope, which shall
not make us ashamed.</p>

<p>Then shall they who were faithful unto death in the truth,
confessed the name of Christ before the world, and put off the
mortal clothing be crowned; these shall be honored by the young
man, Christ Jesus, as Esdras testifies. II Esd. 2:43. Hence, I
am of good cheer in the Lord, be also of good cheer. For when
the suffering was over, I was as though I had had a fall; so
that I can say,"What is suffering when it is over? it is not to
be compared with the glory which shall be revealed in us.
Romans 8:18. Oh, how joyful we shall be when we shall see that
the children of God are such glorious kings, shining forth as
the sun. Then shall the rulers of this world see whom they have
pierced, whom they have mocked, despised and tortured; then
they shall bewail it, but it shall then be too late. Hence I
beseech you, be resigned, and thank the Lord, that you have
raised such a son who is called to such a holy state.</p>

<p>It is no wonder, that this happens to me; consider John,
than whom a holier has not been born of women, and who lived so
austere a life, but yet was imprisoned and put to death; yea,
Christ Himself, Stephen, Peter, James, who did so many
miracles, and so many good works, and were nevertheless put to
death. Hence Christ says, "The servant is not better than his
lord." Thus there must be striving, and the kingdom of God must
be taken by force, for the violent take it by force; for we are
called, not only to believe in Christ, but also to suffer for
Him, and to help bear the sufferings and reproach of Christ.
Though our earthly tabernacle perish, we doubtless expect a
better in heaven. We are as sheep for the slaughter; who are
not worthy of the world, we are to them filth, offscouring, and
fools, for Christ's sake; but we are God's elect out of grace,
through the blood of Jesus Christ, which alone cleanses us from
all our sins, who alone by His sufferings and merits makes us
worthy of His eternal kingdom; to Him be praise, glory, honor
and power for ever and ever. Amen. By me your beloved son,
after I had striven unto blood against my enemies, this first
day of March, A. D. 1572.</p>

<p>My suffering sounds fearful, but I do not think that it
lasted more than two hours in all. I do not know that I was in
torture two hours; should one therefore deny the Lord? God
forbid!</p>

<p>Finally, I pray your love, that you mourn not for me, but
rejoice from the heart, and praise God, that He separated your
firstborn son from the womb, to bear His great and glorious
name before the rulers of the world, and that the faithful God
has so faithfully helped me, for I was scourged thrice, and
suspended four times. But Christ had</p>

</div><div id="919"> 

<p>suffered still more. And after the suffering I received
great joy of the Holy Ghost, yea, that I wept for joy, because
He has kept our lips, and does not suffer us to be tempted
above that we are able to bear. I have deemed it necessary to
write of those wonderful deeds of God, and to spread them, in
order that you should also become bold in the truth; and I
leave you this as a testament in remembrance of me, that the
Spirit of God, which makes me strong and bold, may also thus
confirm and lead you according to His will, who created you,
and that you may love each other: for if you loved each other,
and lived peaceably, when you were in blindness, how much more
ought you to love each other, and to live peaceably, now that
your eyes are enlightened through the grace of God. And always
pray the Lord, to give you still more grace, which He will also
do; if you are found faithful in the little which you have
already received, He will trust you with still more. Yea, He
will give the Holy Ghost to all who ask Him for it; but one
must first depart from evil, deny himself, and say with
Paul, "Lord, what wilt thou have me do?" When the heart is thus
entirely surrendered, the Lord will further work and fulfill in
you, because there is a good will in you. And always humble
yourself under the mighty hand of God, and He shall exalt you
in due time, as He has promised in many places; so that we may
together be exalted by Christ our eternal Saviour, whither I
will now go before, and will much rather first give the mortal
mantle of flesh, than that I should consent to the whore of
Babylon. I will rather be slain by Cain, than on his account
leave undone that which is pleasing to God. I will rather be
stoned with Naboth, than sell my heavenly Father's inheritance,
as Esau sold his birthright. Rather be stoned with Susannah,
than do the will of the false rulers. Rather go with Daniel in
the lion's den, than that I should kneel down before wood,
stone, gold, silver, bread, wine or oil. Rather go with the
young men in the fiery furnace, than worship the image, which
was set up, since it is written, that the Lord God alone is to
be worshiped. Deut. 6. May the same purify you, my much beloved
father and my much beloved mother, and through Christ His
beloved Son, and the co-operation of the Holy Ghost, make you
meet for His eternal kingdom, so that we may hereafter in the
future world see one another with eternal joy. O heavenly
Father, I who am but dust and ashes, beseech Thee here in my
bonds through Jesus Christ, grant hereunto Thy unfathomable
grace. Amen.</p>

<p>Adieu in this transient world. Oh, that you knew what joy I
have; you would, I hope, be still more resigned. Finished this
second day of March. My hand is somewhat better again; I bear
in my body the marks of our Lord. The faith is kept. I have
striven unto blood; in this the holy name of the Lord be
glorified forever. Amen.</p>

<p class="c5">JAN WOUTERSS VAN KUYCK.</p>

<p class="c5">Imprisoned in the Vuylpoort, at Dortrecht.</p>

<h2>THE EIGHTH LETTER FROM JAN WOUTERSS, TO<br />
HIS SISTER-IN-LAW, WHO WAS STILL AMONG<br />
THE PAPISTS, AND IN THE ROMISH FAITH</h2> 

<p>Affectionately written to you, my much beloved sister
Neelken, Jacob's daughter, mother in the convent: I Jan
Wouterss van Kuyck, your beloved brother-in-law, imprisoned at
Dortrecht, not for any evil, but for the obedience of the
Gospel of Christ; which is no shame before my supreme Lord, who
created us, but a great honor to Him, that one for His name's
sake, yea, for well doing, endures contempt and bloody stripes;
such are accounted blessed by the holy Scriptures, which
blessedness [salvation] Christ has merited by His great
sufferings.</p>

<p>And since I sought my salvation in Christ, I have fallen
into affliction, but I do therefore not regret it, for
salvation is dearer to me than this transitory life, and I will
give my life for it, knowing and believing that I shall,
according to God's promises, which will not fail, receive an
eternal one, which is better.</p>

<p>Hence, I beseech you most affectionately, grieve not on my
account; I thank you very kindly for all the great friendship
you have shown me and my dearest wife, and also my only
daughter, and which you may have further shown while I have
been in bonds.</p>

<p>Henceforth I know of no greater friendship to show you, my
beloved sister; than that I must at my end invite you yet to
the marriage of the Lamb, which is Christ; yea, heartily
entreat you, to prepare yourself for it during this short time.
Hence put off the old man with his evil deeds, and put on the
new man, which is renewed in the knowledge of God, of Him that
created him. Put off the old Adam, and put on the new, and walk
therein, and you shall henceforth not be conformed to the
world, but be transformed by the renewing of your mind. Col.
3:9, 10; Rom. 12:2.</p>

<p>See, beloved sister, I declare to you with the holy
Scriptures, that you cannot come to Christ, the Bridegroom,
unless you sincerely follow Him in His footsteps, in the narrow
way which He walked; and I pray you, lay it to heart, for it is
of great importance to you. I say and declare unto you, that
neither you nor any one (I do not mean infants) can follow
Christ, except you first deny yourself and deliver up to Him
your own understanding, reasons, opinions, and your own life,
even as He delivered up His life for us, that all who believe
in Him, and do not live to themselves, should not perish, but
have everlasting life through Him. Suffer to be told and have
mercy on yourself, and trust not in the learned or that you
bear the name of a Christian; to the learned, God's wisdom is
hid. and the name does not make a Christian. But if you would
nevertheless trust in the learned, perceive by their fruits
what kind of trees they are, as Christ taught, that every tree
shall be known by his fruit. Consider how Christ condemns them
in</p>

</div><div id="920"> 

<p>the Gospel, and how they were enraged against Christ and His
apostles, and how they laid hands on them; and though the
heathen judges found no cause of death, yet they had to put to
death the innocent, if they wished to remain the friends of the
scribes and of Caesar. Thus it is still; think not that it is
better now; they fill up the measure of their fathers, that the
righteous blood may be found.on them. I have worked or labored
for my. necessities, for my widow, and for my orphan child;
they will not work themselves, and rather live off that which
is other people's and cannot bear that another works; hence the
bailiff forbids me to work, on their account. Again, when I was
to be tortured the second time, in order that I should betray
my neighbor, which I could not do, on account of my conscience,
they brought to me the superior, who was to prove to me the
Scriptures that I might do it. The superior said that I might
do it, for; said he,"If you are the true people, your fellow
brethren will with you receive the martyr's crown. How can one
attain to greater honor:.hence you may name them. But since you
are not the true people, you ought to name them, for. God hates
the wicked." This the superior said to me. -O dear, consider in
your heart what spirit actuates these learned men, how they
expound-the ultimate object is nothing but murder. O dear Lord,
forgive them. Thou teachest us better, namely, to love our
neighbor as ourselves, yea, to lay down our lives for the
brethren.. Hence separate-from them, you have long been one
with them; lest you partake of their sins and abominable
plagues.</p>

<p>It is now, out of great love, declared to you beforehand, by
your very familiar brother-in-law, before that day comes upon
you as a thief in the night; as the warning came in the first
world, so it does still. Hence, if you would with Noah and his
house be saved and protected, betake yourself under the
protection of the true Noah, and observe His commandment, which
is life everlasting; He calls you and all men; He knocks; He
stretches- out His hand to you; refuse Him no longer, and do
not rely on this, that you are called a Christian, and that God
is merciful. Remember with it, that neither the name, nor the
water, nor the sponsors make a Christian, but he that doeth
righteousness is righteous; they that are led by the Spirit of
Christ are His. And remember also that God is just, as-David
declares, saying, "God is a righteous God, or a righteous judge,
and God is angry with the wicked every day. If he turn not, he
will whet his sword, he hath bent his bow, and made it ready.
He hath also prepared for him the instruments of death; he
ordaineth his arrows against the persecutors." Psalm 7:11-13.
Attend well unto every word, for he is a strong archer when he
lets fly his arrow, none can evade him. Hence consider his
arrows which he let fly at the first world, at Sodom, Gomorrah
and others. These accounts have been left us in writing that we
should fear the Word of the Lord more than the aforesaid
learnedmen; and if we, through fear and love, observe His
commandments, then the Word, that God is merciful, will avail
for us. For His divine nature is such; that His wrath and His
mercy proceed together from Him, and this on this wise, that if
the righteous forsake the way of the Lord, his righteousness
shall not be mentioned, but he shall die for the sake of the
blasphemy. Ezekiel 18:24.</p>

<p>Again, if the sinner turns away from his evil ways, does
that which is good and right; and walks in the way of the Lord,
his sins shall be remembered no more, for the Lord has no
pleasure in the death of the sinner, but that he turn from his
way and live. Ezek. 18:21; 34:11. Hence I beseech you, that you
will free yourself from all the ways of the world, of the
carefulness, and of the old things, of which your heart may be
full; so that the Word of God may be planted in you with
meekness and you may be found good earth bringing forth fruit
abiding unto life eternal. God's judgment is now declared that
every tree which bringeth not forth good fruit shall be hewn
down and cast into the fire. Matthew 7:19. Let therefore the
hammer of the divine Word break your heart into pieces;
remember the words of the prophet, "Rend your hearts; and not
your garments: for God is longsufffering and merciful and of
great kindness, who forgiveth sin." Joel 2:13; Ps. 103:3.
Hence, dear sister, remember that the longsuffering and daily
kindness invite you to salvation; refuse it no longer,.for
thereby you would wrong your own self.' Therefore amend your
life and ways, and believe and obey the Gospel and you shall be
saved through Christ for this is the promise, even eternal
life. I John 2:25. But if you want to continue in the
ordinances of men, and to be led thereby as the ox to the
slaughter; you will find yourself deceived in the end; for in
vain do you observe the commandments of men, which have no
promise from the Lord, as I also said to the superior. He said
that what God has not forbidden he permits. Oh, is this not a
feeble reed in which to trust; but Christ teaches differently,
saying, "Every plant which my heavenly Father hath not planted
shall be rooted up." Matt. 15:13. And the apostle says that no
other foundation can be laid, than Christ alone. I Cor. 3:11:
In the second place the anostle has declared all the counsel of
God and withheld nothing from us. Acts 20:27.</p>

<p>In the third place, he says, "If any preach any other gospel
than I have preached, let him be accursed." Gal. 1:8. Yea,
though it were an angel from heaven (mark well) yet his
doctrine must not be received, if it is anything different. How
should we receive for the purpose of honoring God with it, that
which has proceeded from men, who are prone to wickedness from
the cradle, and drink iniquity like water? Hence, what man
institutes is like 'the labor of the spider; it can be used
neither for covering, nor for clothing; but everyone that hears
a.n~d keeps the Word of God for his salvation need add nothing
to it.</p>

</div><div id="921"> 

<p>Finally, I declare unto you once more in the name of my
Lord, "Amend your life and ways, believe the (zospel, and flee
idolatry." But if you yet think that you do not worship them,
it is at least evident, that you serve them, kneel before them,
and honor them, which God has forbidden, who requires His true
statutes to be kept, and says by the prophet Jeremiah, "Obey my
voice, and I will be your God and ye shall be my people."
Jeremiah 7:23. And another prophet, "A son honoreth his father,
and a servant his master: if I then be a father, where is mine
honour? and if I be a master, where is my fear?" Mal. 1:6.
Hence, if God is our Father, we must obey Him more than men; if
He is our Lord, we must honor Him with that which He commands
us. Then if we be reproached we will think, "The servant is not
better than his lord; if they have called the master of the
house Beelzebub, why should they not call them of his household
so?" In short, he that would follow Christ to His marriage
feast, must deny himself, take up the cross, and prepare his
heart to suffer with Christ, in order afterwards to rejoice
with Him. And this suffering is short, hence it is light</p>

<p>do not on this account remain behind. The Lord will help me
and all the God-fearing through, and He will not suffer you to
be tempted above that you are able to bear, but will help you
to triumph, though your enemies be never so many; God is our
shield, who can overcome Him? Dear beloved sister, it is
nothing strange that I suffer; it is a sign that the Lord loves
me, and I count it for my salvation. He tries me as gold is
tried in the fire; thus He tried many chosen saints of God
before my time, as Abraham, Jacob, Moses, Caleb, Joshua,
Daniel, John the Baptist who was the holiest of those born of
women; Christ Himself and His apostles and others, were tried,
as Job; but if we adhere to the Lord in temptation, the crown
of eternal life is ready for us.</p>

<p>Herewith I will conclude this letter, kindly asking you not
to reject my humble labor to you, which I have done out of
great friendship. Search the Scriptures in regard to these
things, and see whether they are not so. If you cannot
understand or comprehend it, I kindly ask you, love your dear
sister nevertheness, for she has been to me a very affectionate
and faithful wife, so that I cannot thank her enough for her
friendship and good company. Likewise love our only daughter,
for I think that she has prolonged her beloved mother's life,
the Lord be praised. But do not lead our child to dumb idols;
by so doing you would sin still more against God. Take my
letter in good part; for it has been done out of a faithful
heart. O Lord, grant our beloved sister Thy holy knowledge, as
Thou didst to Saul, who also had a zeal without knowledge.</p>

<p>Herewith I bid you, my beloved sister, adieu. Farewell.</p>

<p>Written in my bonds, on the fifth day of March,A. D. 1572.
By me, your beloved brother-in-law, (in the Vuylpoort at
Dortrecht).</p>

<p class="c5">JAN WOUTERSS KUYCK.</p>

<h2>THE NINTH LETTER FROM JAN WOUTERSS, TO HIS<br />
YOUNGEST THREE SISTERS</h2> 

<p>Affectionately written to you, my three beloved sisters, by
me your beloved imprisoned brother, imprisoned for well-doing,
and for the obedience of the Gospel, which is no shame to me
before the Almighty, who has created us, but is a great honor
to Him, for His power is made manifest, through us poor men,
who suffer and endure stripes and contempt for His name's sake,
and adhere nevertheless to the truth. Hence we do not regard
these wicked men, who are nothing but dust and ashes, and shall
vanish away as a vapor; but they that do the will of God shall
abide forever. Though our earthly tabernacle perish, which must
perish once, we look with patience for a better one in heaven,
which is imperishable. And since we are assured of this in our
hearts, we faint not, willing to be freed from this vile
flesh,.which is prone to sin from infancy and to be at home,
resting with Christ our Lord. But before we attain to this
rest, we must first labor a little and fight against our
enemies, who have been, and are still, very many. Understand
this well, we get through this, and this through Him who
strengthens us, which is Christ our Lord, who fights for us, so
that we keep the faith, and see our desire upon our enemies;
and we can rejoice in our sufferings, because of the victory
which we obtain through Christ. And striving thus, we enter
into rest. Yes, our dear Lord so strengthened me, that I was
not disturbed by all the torturing. It seemed to me that I
could embrace the bailiff, so friendly was my heart towards
him, when I was not yet dressed after the torture.</p>

<p>See, my dear, beloved sisters, I have discovered it for you
in advance; that the Lord of lords is a faithful helper in time
of need. Hence I beseech you together, fear not men but this
almighty Lord; for they cannot harm one hair of the people of
God, except they first receive the power from our Lord on high,
and He will not permit them more than we are able to bear, and
will always with the temptation make a way to escape so that we
shall be able to bear it. I Cor. 10:13. The souls of the
righteous are ever in the hand of God, and the torment of death
shall not touch them. Wisd. 3:1. He is able to alleviate the
pain, as He did to me. Praise to Him forever for. His great
faithfulness. Amen.</p>

<p>Mark thereby the wonderful deeds of God, that He so
faithfully helps them that believe and firmly trust in Him,
whom they yet do not see.</p>

<p>Hence I know of no greater friendship to show you for this
time, than to reveal to you the wonderful deeds of God, that
you may rejoice therein with me, and that you may also be
awakened to your salvation, to seek it alone in Christ Jesus,
through His holy Word, which teaches us, in the first
place,</p>

</div><div id="922"> 

<p>repentance, and to believe in the Gospel, in which Christ
has said, "If any man thirst, let him come unto me and drink for
nought. He that believeth on me, as the Scriptures hath said,
out of his belly shall flow rivers of living water. This spake
he of the Holy Spirit which they that believe on Christ should
receive." John 7:37. Hence I entreat you most affectionately,
to betake yourselves to the clear wine Christ Jesus; you shall
receive it without price. Hence, constantly lead a penitent
life, and pray with a longing heart for saving faith; so hunger
and long to receive it from Christ, as you would long to
receive bread, when you are hungry; and you shall receive it,
and shall bring forth the fruits of the Holy Spirit, namely,
love, peace, gentleness, patience, longsuffering, goodness,
faith, meekness, temperance and thus in all the virtues you are
to approve yourselves in obedience and in a meek and quiet
spirit, as dear children of God, and always prepare and adorn
yourselves thereto, and not with gold, silver, or costly
apparel, for thereby one conforms to the world, to please her.
But I counsel you for the best, that you do not do these
things, lest you be punished with the world by the future
judge, Jesus Christ, whom they despised and cast out, together
with the prophets, apostles, and many saints, and also your
brethren. Hence do not seek to please the wicked world, but Him
who created you, that you may be saved through Jesus
Christ.</p>

<p>Hence exercise yourselves and read the Word of the Lord,
which will profit you in all things, how you may walk
circumspectly in order to please the living God, and to be
saved. And then the Spirit of Christ will guide you into all
things, and you shall yourselves be taught of God. And He shall
with the finger of His Holy Spirit write inwardly upon the
tables of your heart.</p>

<p>Therefore always hearken to Him, and you shall be His
friends, yea, He shall be your brother; and if you follow Him
to the end, you shall possess what Christ possesses. Thither I
will now go before, and wait for you there a short time, hoping
that you will follow for your salvation's sake. When then our
beloved father, and our beloved mother, my dearest and beloved
wife, and my dear, only child, my only brother, my dear,
beloved sisters, and other familiar friends, when we shall meet
together (as I hope) in God's kingdom, what greater joy could
we have? Hence take heed that this do not fail us, and that
none of us be found to remain without. Love one another; set
one another a good example; let each seek to be the first in
good works and in the fruits of faith. Be diligent in reading,
and warn one another against sin, for the other, crooked
serpent* is very subtle in drawing off, and in exhibiting the
lusts of the world, thereby to allure you, in order to keep you
from God. He will lay his ambushes and manifold nets and
snares; but continue always steadfastly in the</p>

<p class="c8">* Evidently an allusion to Isaiah 27:1, where
(see German version) two serpents seem to be indicated></p>

<p>fear of
God, and do not listen to him, and he will flee from you; and
think how he deceived Eve and Adam, and the whole first world,
with the exception of eight persons. And it is still the same
spirit: hence keep diligent watch, often resort to fasting and
prayer, and always live soberly, that your flesh do not
overcome you; for this is the worst enemy, for wherever we be,
he is always with us, and is constantly advising us to evil. He
ever strives against the Spirit; for it is very painful to the
flesh, that it cannot fulfill its lust, and that it is
subjugated by the Spirit. But, dtiarest sisters, if it should
happen that Satan should take you una,%~ares (since he never
rests, but is always seeking whom he may devour) always rise
again, and do not yield yourselves to become servants or
handmaids of sin, but take better heed;1it is for your warning.
Hence humble yourselvles under the mighty hand of God, and seek
henceforth to purify your souls in obeying the truth through
the Spirit, and run henceforth in the conflict that is set
before you and all the God-fearing; that you may not be found
as those who become weary and dissatisfied in the way of the
Lord, as I have known many to do. For by conflict all the
God-fearing are tried; for how should they overcome, if there
were no conflict? but to them that overcome the kingdom and an
eternal crown are promised as a reward. And the holy Scriptures
also teach you to honor father and mother; hence do not forget
this, but help them in everything wherein they may need you,
and always proffer your willing service; for this will be
pleasing to the Lord, and our dear, beloved, venerable father,
and our dear, beloved, venerable mother, can then rejoice,
because their children have found delight in keeping God's
commandments, whereby one can escape the future wrath of God.
And when their days are fulfilled, they can depart in peace and
tranquility, and commit the keeping of their souls in well
doing unto a faithful Creator, and this because this good Lord
has also called their dear children to the faith, and they have
lived to see that they have found delight in the truth, to take
it up, <i>which has</i> so long been trampled under foot, even
as the whole world still does in its ignorance. Again, because
they leave behind them believing children, for a child that
fears God is better than a thousand that are ungodly; for
children that do not fear God are to believing parents an
affliction from the Lord, which cannot well be healed.</p>

<p>Thus, my dearest, beloved three sisters, I will commend and
trust to you and my only brother, that you will fear and love
God all your life which will last but a short time when
compared to the ages of eternity. The fear of God teaches to
beware of evil; and to love God is to keep His commandments, as
Christ says, "If ye love me, keep my commandments."</p>

<p>The Scripture also says, "The fear of the Lord driveth out
sin; it is also the beginning of wisdom."</p>

</div><div id="923"> 

<p>Sir. 1:21, 27. Hence I entreat you all, love the wisdom of
God above gold, and it shall come and meet you; and when you
have received much understanding and wisdom, do not exalt
yourselves therein, as though you were somebody; but thank the
Lord for it, that He gives it into your keeping, and always
apply it for the purpose, for which He has given it you, for He
appoints you only stewards over it. And when the Lord then sees
that you are faithful over His property, that you do not suffer
it to lie idle, nor squander it, but that you are lights in the
world, as pleasant, olive twigs of Christ, pleasant branches,
beautiful stones in the temple of the Lord, He can entrust to
you much more still, so that you may bring forth fruit more
abundantly, bride of Christ, as a people of God, as members, as
sisters and brethren of Christ, yea, as a royal priesthood. But
when the other, crooked serpent sees this, he will envy you
most, and work against you through the children of unbelief, in
whom he now works, and in whom he has always worked. But, my
dear sisters, always be of good courage, and take faith for a
shield, with which always to protect yourselves and you shall
quench and resist his fiery darts; and be armed also with the
other spiritual weapons of God, as the apostle teaches, Eph. 6,
and you shall remain steadfast, and be saved. May the good,
eternal, almighty God, who lives in eternity, who rejoices with
His holy angels over one sinner that repents with all his
heart, make you all, my beloved sisters and brother, meet and
perfect for His heavenly kingdom, through Jesus Christ His only
Son, and by the co-operation of His Holy Spirit, that you may
always have your delight in the right way of the Lord as David
says; for they [His judgments) are true and righteous, and more
precious than fine gold, and sweeter than the honeycomb (Psalm
19:9, .10); use all diligence to perform this, and this to the
salvation of your, souls. Amen.</p>

<p>Herewith I will bid you my much beloved three sisters, adieu
in this sorrowful, transient world, and I thank your love for
all your friendship.</p>

<p>Written in my bonds, and finished on the, sixth day of
March, by your beloved brother, for a remembrance to you all.
A. D. 1572.</p>

<p class="c5">J. v. K.</p>

<h2>THE TENTH LETTER FROM JAN WOUTERSS, TO HIS<br />
OLDEST BROTHER-IN-LAW AND SISTER</h2> 

<p>Grace and peace from God the heavenly Father., through Jesus
Christ His only Son our Lord and Saviour, and the co-operation
of His Holy Spirit, always be multiplied to you both, for the
confirmation of your faith, and for consolation ,on your,
pilgrimage, that you may not weary in the only way of life, but
may unwaveringly go on to your rest, so that you may together
receive.the end of your sure faith, namely, the salvation of
your souls. Amen.After this my cordial brotherly salutation and
good wish, be pleased to know, my most cordially beloved oldest
brother-in-law, and my most heartily beloved sister, that in
this conflict I have constantly remained unchanged in the faith
of the truth, once delivered to the saints; for which I now
suffer vexation from mortal men, enduring it with a patient
heart.</p>

<p>I cannot fully thank the Lord for this great grace that He
has thus preserved us as the apple of His eye. Hence I beseech
you both, be not dismayed on account of my transient
tribulation, but be the bolder in the living faith, which
worketh by love, knowing that your labor will not be in vain,
but that it will follow you, clothing and adorning you in the
day of Christ. Hereunto look constantly, and always follow His
footsteps, in humility and meekness of heart; and be ever
resolved the longer the more to live still more holy,
remembering that we always fall short in many things, as I also
experience in my own case; but my hope and refuge is Christ
Jesus, who is our salvation, righteousness, perfection, eternal
priest, propitiation, and intercessor. I would further inform
you my specially beloved brother and sister in the Lord, that I
your beloved brother-in-law and weak, unworthy brother, could
not well refrain from writing your love a little, though I am
conscious that my gift is simple and small, and you have an
abundance of Scripture, and also the anointing, which always
teaches you what is right, so that I deem it unnecessary to
write you much; but I feel nevertheless constrained thereto, in
order that I may, in some measure, show you my unchanging love
before I put off this tabernacle; it serves for your
consolation and for the strengthening of your faith, and I am
confident in my heart, that it will be acceptable to you,
though it be little. Thus, my dearest, I present to you nothing
new, but beseech and exhort you both, that you take diligent
heed to keep the pearl of great price, and to preserve the
precious treasure in your earthen vessels. For you know how
much it cost you, before you found and obtained it; and in
confirmation of it that it still is and remains in you; let
your light shine before your enemies, who are terrified
thereby, and vanquished before your eyes by the Lord, without
your help, as we have an example in Gideon, and others, wherein
it is fully shown to us, that the Lord fights His people's
battles. And since it is certain that the almighty Lord is with
us, who can be against us? He that spared not His onlv Son. how
should He not with Him give us all things? Thus He is a shield
to them that seek and trust Him with all their hearts, and
believe His Word to be sure, that He will not forsake us, but
[that the Lord Almighty will be with us unto the end of the
world.</p>

<p>But if we do not trust Him, and forsake Him, and are afraid
of the manifold enemies of the truth, and flee on this account,
as did the ten spies, He will also forsake us. But if we have a
manful spirit.</p>

</div><div id="924"> 

<p>with Joshua, Caleb and David, and remember in our hearts,
that God is true, that His hand is not shortened, that He is a
faithful succorer of the miserable, who has delivered us from
the hand of Pharaoh, from the specious deceptive and
insinuating sedition of Korah, Dathan and Abiram, from the
strange fire, and from other enemies and perils, and who,
according to His promise, for His name's sake, and for our
salvation, will help us further; not only in the beginning, or
in the middle, but unto the end will He bruise the head of our
enemies, so that through the help of the Lord we shall overcome
our enemies. Hence have good courage, and be of good cheer; He
who through His great grace began the good work in you, the
same is also able (this is certain) to perform it in you, and
in all that believe in Him and are of good purpose. And
consider, do we not see our desire upon our enemies, that,
however they stir, labor, strive, despise, beat, threaten, and
slander, we through the grace of our Lord nevertheless remain
unchanged and undisturbed? I certainly believe that
steadfastness is the desire of Christians for it has the
promise of salvation. Thus I unworthy one, in a small degree
hereby minister to you, that I may spread and magnify the name
of the Lord, and His faithful daily help and power. I also
counsel all Christians, when they go walking in their pleasure
garden, namely, in the holy Scriptures, that they forget not
the Psalms of David, which are left us by the Spirit of God,
they serve us especially to righteousness, boldness, a firm
confidence, a living hope, and for consolation in our
pilgrimage. In short, all Scripture is given by inspiration of
God, and is profitable for doctrine, for reproof, for
correction, for instruction in righteousness: that the man of
God may be perfect, throughly furnished unto all good works. II
Tim. 3:16, 17. Again, "Whatsoever things were written aforetime
were written for our learning, that we, through patience and
comfort of the Scriptures might have hope." Rom. 15:4. Hence
adhere thereto; you will therein find all that will be
necessary to your salvation, as I trust from the heart that
there will abide in you that which you have heard and accepted
from the beginning, nothing strange, but as declared in the
holy Scriptures. For you know what it has wrought in you, how
through this heavenly trial you are delivered from your vain
conversation, in which the whole world is still sunk; how you
have turned from dumb idols to the living God, yea, are passed
from death unto life, so that you are enlightened, and your
hope made alive, and all this through Tesus Christ. And loving
His appearing, we patiently wait for Him in good works, which
live in us, so that we love our neighbor as ourselves, seek his
advantage more than our own, yea, when necessary lay down our
lives for the brethren. This is a seal and sign that we love
Him whom we do not see, and that we yet believe in Him, as
though we saw Him. Again, if we did not love the brethren, whom
we see, how could we in truth love God,whom we do not see? But
that we from the heart and fearlessly love the brethren and
sisters, by this it is known that we are Christ's disciples;
and they that are Christ's disciples are sometimes tried, as
gold in the fire; yet not to destruction, but to purification
and greater perfection, for He chastens every son whom He wants
to receive and loves. Heb. 12:6. And it is nothing strange to
us, that this now in these latter days happens to us unworthy
ones; for it has always been so from the time of Abel-darkness
has always hated the light, for they will not be reproved in
their darkness, but resent it, and in order to defend
themselves, and to continue in their own way, they say,"Judge
not, that ye be not judged;" but what the apostle says, "And have no fellowship with the unfruitful works of
darkness, but rather reprove them" (Eph. 5:11); this they
passed by.</p>

<p>Thus drunkards, idolaters, and the like, know how to help
themselves with the Scriptures; but alas! with such fig leaves
they wrong themselves, and suffer themselves to be led by the
learned like the ox to the slaughter. O dear Lord, I heartily
pray Thee, enlighten the eyes of our enemies, as Thou didst to
Paul, who also persecuted the church of God. Take this brief
letter in good part, for I trust that you are yourselves taught
and strengthened. Be manful therein, watch, stand fast in the
faith, be strong in the faith, and let all your things be done
in love, and as I sincerely trust concerning you both. Herewith
I will commend you, my much beloved brother-in-law and brother
in the Lord, and my greatly beloved sister in the Lord (and by
marriage), to the Lord of lords, and to the rich Word of His
grace-, which is able to keep you from all evil, and to make
you zealous in that which is good, and meet for His eternal
kingdom, to give it to you, the incorruptible inheritance among
them that are sanctified. I also thank'you both as much as I
can, for your great friendship and affection to me unworthy
one.</p>

<p>Herewith I bid you adieu; there in the presence of Christ
Jesus I will await you, and my very dear wife, and all the
God-fearing left behind. Amen.</p>

<p>Written shortly before Easter, when I hourly expected to be
notified that I was to offer up my sacrifice, to the praise of
God, and to my salvation. Amen.</p>

<p>Herewith I bid my nephews and nieces adieu on this earth.
Oh, that they would also follow Christ, when they have attained
to understanding; then they would also come where He, namely,
Christ, is; and they that repent and keep His commandments,
these are His friends and disciples who follow Him.</p>

<p>Hence I beseech you, my dear, beloved niece, to shun evil,
diligently to seek the kingdom of God and His righteousness,
and to work to satisfy her hunger with bread, and quench her
thirst with drink. If you do this, my dear niece, you will be
one who with Mary has chosen the good part; and I will then
await you there with Christ Jesus,</p>

</div><div id="925"> 

<p>whither I will go a little beforehand; and all that love the
truth will follow. To this end may the good Lord grant His
grace, that this my heartfelt wish may be realized, to the
salvation of my nieces and nephews. Amen.</p>

<p>Written in my bonds, by me,</p>

<p class="c5">JAN WOUTERSS VAN KUYCK.</p>

<h2>THE ELEVENTH LETTER FROM JAN WOUTERSS, TO<br />
P. J., HIS YOUNGEST BROTHER-IN-LAW</h2> 

<p>Grace and peace from God the Father through Jesus Christ,
and the co-operation of the Holy Spirit, be multiplied to you,
my much beloved brother, and to all that seek their salvation
with all their heart, in the name of Jesus Christ; that we may
be able to stand, by the help of the Lord, in this last
conflict that is set before us, and may patiently finish it,
for an example to our neighbor, for a light to the world, to
the salvation of the soul, and to the praise of God. Amen.</p>

<p>After this my heartfelt wish, I cannot forbear to write you
a little, if peradventure I and you may be refreshed somewhat
thereby. In the first place, know that I cannot fully thank our
God for His grace, that He has called me, unworthy, poor vile
man to this state, whereby I perceive the great love which He
has to me, unworthy one; He chastens me according to His mercy,
thereby confirming that I am not a bastard. O what great grace
is this, that the good God seeks my salvation, which salvation
has been, and still is, the sole object of my seeking and
praying, as I wrote to you before my imprisonment, to help me
to pray; that the Lord would give and let come upon me what is
for my salvation, which I trust His grace that He, out of great
mercy, does, and will do according to His promise and goodness,
and not according to my righteousness, for His grace knows
better than I what I need. Hence His will be done for my
salvation, to take me away from the evil, which frequently
arises through the work of Satan, which he works in the
children of unbelief; for I have found from my youth, that one
trouble and difficulty follows upon the heels of another. And
he that from the heart seeks his salvation and the welfare of
the church, often has to suffer the pains of travail. Moreover,
one has much to die unto and mortify in himself, and constantly
to fight, so that one is seldom without conflict, even as Paul
and also many pious witnesses of God; but all who do not become
weary, and who overcome, shall inherit all things, and to them
that overcome the crown is promised. Let therefore no one
become faint or weary, knowing and believing that we have such
a strong champion, who cannot be conquered, but from whom the
wicked must flee. Paul says, "If God be for us, who can be
against us?" Rom. 8:31. The Lord said to Abraham, "Fear not; I
am thy shield, and thy exceeding great reward." Gen. 15:1. The
Lord said, yea, commanded him, that he should be of good
courage, and not be afraid ordismayed; He promised always to be
with him, wherever he should go (thus He was also with His
faithful servant Moses), and [told him] that he should meditate
day and night on the law of God. (Oh! herein I fall far too
short, which I heartily regret), that he should not depart
therefrom either to the right or to the left, and his way
should be prosperous and full of blessings, and he should
trample his enemies under foot and devour them as bread. Yea,
God sent His angel, as He had promised, as a champion, so that
the Lord Himself fought the battle. Oh, is this not a faithful
God! who should not trust in His powerful Word? And though we
do not see Him externally, yet we daily behold His creation,
which through the power of His Word still stands in its
strength, though it be but a little flower out of the
earth.</p>

<p>Hence, though a storm come upon us occasionally, let us
firmly rely upon the word and promise of the Lord; that we do
not sink with Peter, but pass over this raging sea to the Lord,
always praying Him, in faith, and with firm confidence in His
Word, for strength, as those that are never sated. I, unworthy
servant, now in this state well experience His faithfulness,
praise to Him forever. He has promised to assist us, and not to
forsake us, as He says by the prophet, "Can a mother forget the
son of her womb, that she should not have compassion on him?
though she do this, yet will I not forsake thee." Isa. 49:15.
He is also the strength of the poor, a sure refuge, and a true
helper in time of need. Yea, He preserves His own as the apple
of His eye, in water, in bonds, and in the fire; hence, he that
afflicts His chosen afflicts Him, as the Lord said to Saul, "Why
persecutest thou me?" and he that does good to His chosen in
His name, does good to Him. Hence let everyone persevere
steadfastly, and do good cheerfully without wearying, for in
due time we shall also reap without ceasing; and the good shall
arise unto everlasting life. We are created unto good works
through Christ. Hence let everyone bring forth good fruit, unto
which he is appointed; and God our heavenly Father will be
honored, and purify us still more, that we may bring forth
fruit still more abundantly, and grow up unto the [measure of
the] stature of the fullness of Christ; and so doing we shall
wait for the coming of our Lord and Bridegroom, and this with
patience, for patience is the strength of the God-fearing.
Nothing special further for this time, but hold fast what you
have, and be faithful unto death, for your and my faith is the
unadulterated truth, which perform in the fear of God, by the
help of the Lord, and you shall have peace with the Lord,
according to His promise. Be of good cheer this short time of
your pilgrimage; sorrow not for me; and though I am now
baptized with the baptism of suffering, and drink the cup of
affliction, it is for my salvation. Henceforth I expect through
the grace of the Lord the crown of life. What does it signify?
once we must part; if I had died of the pest, or of something
else, all to</p>

</div><div id="926"> 

<p>whom my person is dear would certainly have to miss me; and
it is manifest that I do not suffer as an evil doer, but
because I have accepted Christ Jesus, and this I do not at all
regret. I salute you, my dear wife, and yours, and all the
God-fearing, cordially in the Lord. Pray for me, and cause
prayer to be made for me. Amen.</p>

<h2>A CONFESSION OF FAITH, TO THE BAILIFF AND<br />
THE COUNCIL THEN RESIDING IN DORTRECHT,<br />
BY JAN WOUTERSS; TOGETHER WITH A<br />
BRIEF EXPLANATION EXHORTING<br />
THEM TO REPENTANCE</h2> 

<p>To my honorable lord the bailiff, and my honorable lords the
burgomasters, aldermen and the council of the city of
Dortrecht. I, Jan Wouterss, your prisoner, not for any crime,
but for the sake of my faith, which is nevertheless right
before my God, wish you, you ministers of God, that He would
grant you all a prosperous, peaceful, healthy, long life, and
understanding rightly to use your office, in punishing the evil
(that is, evildoers), and protecting the good. Rom. 13:3.</p>

<p>Further, the reason of my writing is, that I briefly
confessed my faith, but did not add the explanation. Hence I
put this in writing, in order not to summon my honorable lords
again, and cause them trouble. I confess that I was a zealous
papist in my youth, which I heartily regret, for then no good
fruits proceeded from me. Afterwards God opened my blind eyes,
to serve no longer dumb idols, but the living God alone, who
created me. And He revealed to and gave me, poor, sinful man,
the faith of the truth, by which' we are saved. This faith is,
as- the Scripture says, "This faith and the inward baptism
constrained me to the obedience of his word, to fulfill his
righteousness." Hence I confess, that I was baptized upon my
faith, and this with desire, according to the command of
Christ, renouncing the devil, the world, the pope, and his
adherents.</p>

<p>I confess Christ Jesus alone as the way of the truth, and
the life. And there is none other name given to men, whereby we
can be saved, except through Christ alone. I further confess
that it is certain that the customs of the priests and of all
the"shaved" are the broad way to damnation. They are human
institutions, an abomination to God, and plants which our
heavenly Father has not planted; hence they are also cursed,
for there can no other foundation be laid, than that is laid,
which is Christ alone. Those of the pope's adherents who
undertake to be leaders are blind leaders, and if the blind
lead the blind, says Christ, both shall fall into the ditch.
Everyone that will not believe it, or cannot, because of his
sins, the same must know it after death by pain (II Esd. 9:12);
hence repent truly now. Further, my honorable lord bailiff
thinks that I am in error, or that my faith is of no account.
To this I reply, "If this were true, then my fruits Would be
evil, which always prove more than'mereconfession; but now I
have by the help of God walked therein for so many years, from
my youth, even until now, according to my weakness, avoided all
bad company, diligently and quietly earned my living, and eaten
my own bread, from which I am now taken away, as though I were
a murderer." O Lord, forgive them, for they know not what they
do; I forgive them, O my dear lords, repent, for he who touches
us touches the apple of the eye of my God.</p>

<p>I also confess that I have attended the assembly of the
believers, so often that I cannot count it. For the supreme
King has given us a promise therein, saying, "Where two or three
are gathered together in my name, there am I in the midst of
them." Matt. 18:20. The apostle commands us in His name, not to
forsake the assembling of ourselves together, but to exhort one
another, and to provoke unto love and to good works. Heb.
10:25, 24. I confess that I have never been in an assembly to
harm any one (think on this). I confess that I have not for
many years been to the priests' confession and their sacrament,
and .this because I do not think anything of it; moreover, I
confess, that I am a sinful man, and need every day to confess
my sins before my God, and daily to die unto sin, more and
more, which I regard as the best confession. But the sacrament
I recognize as a little baked cake, and wine, till it is
consumed by the afore-mentioned of my [other] men, and nothing
else, but, not as the flesh and blood of Christ; He comes no
more into the hands of sinners. He dwelleth not in temples made
with hands (Acts 7:48), but in heaven, whence He shall come to
judge the quick and the dead, that is, believers and
unbelievers. But I confess that I am well satisfied with
Christ's breaking of bread, the practice of the apostles among
the believers, in remembrance of the body and blood of Christ,
and this not with drunkards, proud, strikers, adulterers,
murderers, idolaters, harlots, rogues, etc.</p>

<p>I also confess that I did not marry my wife secretly, that
no one should see it, but before the church of God; for
marriage is honorable, but whoremongers and adulterers God will
punish. Heb. 13:4. O my God, count it not sin to him who took
me away; for it is a bitter cup to me to part from wife and
child, because we love one another so much- I also confess that
my child has not been baptized by the priest, neither by any
one else, for thereby I 'Would despise the holy blood of
Christ.* But this is my firm belief that Christ has made
atonement for infants, and that Christ's baptism belongs to
none but those who believe with all their heart, as Cornelius
with his family, Paul, and others; of this afore-mentioned
faith I am sure through the grace of God, and know certainly,
that there is no other, nor ever will be. I have not founded
myself upon the wind, but solely upon the foundation of the
apostles and prophets. Jesus</p>

<p class="c8">* Then I should sacrifice my child to the devil,
the author had written, but this reads a little too harsh.</p>

</div><div id="927"> 

<p>Christ Himself being the chief cornerstone, to the wicked an
offense, and to the good a defense and salvation. If I must
innocently suffer for this unadulterated faith, I can think,
that my Lord Jesus Christ, whose servant, I poor, sinful man
am, fared no better at the hands of the authorities of that day
and this through the instigation of the learned. O my honorable
lords, repent, amend your ways and your doings. Jer. 7:3. And I
also proclaim repentance to all my lords still living, who are
guilty of the innocent blood of Joris de Ve.,* who shall soon
come forth, shining in God's glory, with great joy. For the day
of the Supreme judge is at the door: this is apparent from the
pestilence, dearth, rumors of wars, and many other signs. O my
honorable lords, be cordially warned of the evil which is to
come upon you, for it is done out of love and friendship, and
not through bitterness, for beyond doubt, we must all appear
before the Supreme judge; there every one shall give account of
himself, and receive according to that he hath done; there
excuses or regrets will not avail. Rom. 14:12; II Cor. 5:10.
Oh, reflect; it will soon come to pass, and none can escape
it.</p>

<p>Further, I did not reply to all the questions of my
honorable lord the bailiff, who demanded of me that I should
tell the truth, which I have done in the confession of my
faith, of this I am certain; but the other questions I dare not
answer, for Christ has taught me, "Do to men as you would have
them do to you; love your neighbor as yourself; love your wife,
honor your parents," etc. For this reason I have foreborne, and
I am sure that in this my Supreme judge will justify me, when
we shall together appear before His judgment seat; for I have
not done it out of any disregard for my honorable lord the
bailiff. I also have refused your learned men the presentation,
for I am so sure of my faith, that [I am convinced that] all
those who speak against it are in error. Hence do not regard it
as proceeding from obstinacy on my part, but from the assurance
of my faith.</p>

<p>Finally, deal mercifully with me innocent one, and think
that I too am a man; for hereafter he"shall have judgment
without mercy, that hath shewed no mercy." Jas. 2:13. I confess
one Lord, one faith, one God, one Father of all, who is above
all, and in all believers. I believe only what the holy
Scriptures say; and not what men say. Farewell. Written in my
bonds.</p>

<p class="c8">* Hereby is meant Joris Wippe, who was put to
death at Dortrecht, A.D. 1558.</p>

<br />

<h1>A LETTER FROM ADRIAENKEN, JAN'S DAUGHTER, 
OF MOLENAERSGRAEF, WRITTEN TO HER HUSBAND 
WHILE SHE WAS IN PRISON, IN THE VUYLPOORT AT DORTRECHT, 
WHERE SHE WAS BURNT WITH JOHN WOUTERSS VAN KUYCK, THE 28TH OF MARCH,
 AS PREVIOUSLY SHOWN</h1> 

<p>Grace and peace from God our heavenly Father, through Jesus
Christ His only Son, our Lord and Saviour, and the co-operation
of the Holy Ghost, be multiplied to your love, and to all the
God-fearing, for consolation in your pilgrimage, to the praise
of the Lord, and to the salvation of all your souls. Amen.</p>

<p>After this my cordial salutation and good wish, please know,
my dearest and cordially beloved husband and brother in the
Lord, that your dearly beloved wife and sister in the Lord,
called Adriaenken Jan's daughter, am still of good cheer in the
Lord, and I can never thank the Lord of lords enough for His
daily greatness in showing His grace, is to me unworthy one.
Eternal praise and glory be to Him, for ever and ever.
Amen.</p>

<p>Please know further, J. A., my cordially beloved husband,
that I your dearest, beloved wife and sister in the Lord, could
not well forbear, but must leave your love, a few lines in
remembrance of me, on account of the great love which we have
had to each other, and which I hope will abide forever, and
that no one shall separate us from it, and though we are
separated from each other according to the eternal body, yet
love remains. And, in the second place, to comfort you a
little, that you would moderate your grief, as one that well
knows, that these are the costs of our house which we have
founded upon the rock Christ, which house will now certainly
continue to stand, through the grace and power of the Lord,
though many a storm beat upon it, wherein we rejoice that we
have such a faithful Helper in distress. But it is not
expedient, that we keep this joy to ourselves alone, but that
we spread the same, so that you, my dearest on this earth, and
all the God-fearing, if it were possible, might also rejoice,
in order that you, my especially beloved husband, and all the
God-fearing, may steadfastly persevere, and not be afraid.
Though our enemies are so many, we say with the prophet
Elisha, "There are more with us than against us," II Kings 6:16.
As also Paul says, "If God be for us, who can be against us? He
that spared not his own Son, but delivered him up for us all,
how shall he not with him also freely give us all things?" Rom.
8:31, 32. And the prophet David says, "The Lord is an invincible
shield to all that trust in him; and a faithful helper in
distress, for he hears the cry of the afflicted." Hence, my
dearest, go on in the confidence in the promises of the Lord,
for He is a faithful, true God: there is none like Him; all His
promises are yea in Him, and not nay, as well to help us in
distress in this present time, as to give eternal life
hereafter to them that believe in Christ.</p>

</div><div id="928"> 

<p>We two unworthy lambs of Jesus Christ go now quite near the
city full of all good things, which has become our inheritance
through the merits of Christ; yea, we are going out from
tribulation, out from all difficulty and peril, and leave you
and all the other dearest brethren, sisters and friends, in
this dismal wilderness, even in this wicked world full of all
unrighteousness where on every hand of evil examples, to the
detriment and sorrow of our soul, for one cannot well touch
pitch and remain undefiled therewith. Hence it is our
conviction that it is the Lord's pleasure to take us two weak
lambs away speedily, that we may not be deceived, like Eve, but
saved in and through faith in Jesus Christ. And that the
only-wise, good and merciful God first tries us somewhat in
this one chastisement; this is a token of grace and of special
love, for He now deals with us unworthy ones, as a dear father
deals with and bears affection to His children, whereby He
confirms, according to, His great mercy, that He does not know
us as bastards, but as true heirs. Heb. 12:8.</p>

<p>Hence we are of good cheer; whatever the Lord suffers to
come upon us, is all for our good, for in tribulation He
forgives sin; therefore His holy will be done for our profit,
that is, for our salvation, which is our greatest desire,
wherefore we endure everything, and are patient, according to
the example of job, prophets, the apostles, and the end of our
Lord, and other martyrs after them. We now go steadfastly
forward, to finish our conflict by the help of the Lord with a
faithful heart, even unto death, for we know and believe that
the crown of eternal life is prepared for us. Amen. Thus, my
cordially beloved husband and dearest brother in the Lord, I
your specially, cordially beloved wife, Adriaenken Jans, your
dearest sister in the Lord, who have married each other before
the Lord and His church, I will herewith bid your love adieu,
and await you there with your and our dearest Bridegroom,
Christ Jesus. Therefore hold fast that which you have, for it
is the only and unadulterated truth, that no one take your
crown, for Satan works wonderfully in his own. '</p>

<p>The superior of the Franciscan convent said to me, "Give me
Jan Wouterss, he at least said that he is sorry for it." O
villain, thought I; I well know your trickery, Thus the Lord
kept me, that we may always triumph in Christ: He will still,
according to His promise, help us on further in the way to the
promised land of our rest.</p>

<p>Herewith I will commend you my dearest husband and beloved
brother in the Lord, to the Almighty God, and to the rich Word
of His grace, which is able to build you up, to keep you from
evil and to bring you to the eternal inheritance; there I hope
to see you with eternal joy, to which end the good God grant
His grace. Amen. Take this, my brief letter, in good part. To
write much I do not deem necessary, for the God-fearing have
left us, through the inspiration of the Holy Ghost, anabundance
of writings, for correction, for doctrine, for consolation and
strengthening.</p>

<p>I Adriaenken Jan's daughter, your cordial and dearest wife
and sister in the Lord, greet you my most beloved husband and
dearest brother in the Lord, affectionately with the kiss of
eternal love and peace of Christ, with the mouth of my heart,
present with you in spirit.</p>

<p>Finally, I herewith bid you adieu once more, and thank you
as much as lies in me, for your good company and
faithfulness.</p>

<p>Written by me your beloved wife Adriaenken Jans, imprisoned
for the testimony of the gospel of Christ, to the praise of the
Lord, to the comfort and joy of our neighbor, for a light to
them that are yet in darkness, to the confusion of those who
have condemned us as apostates, and to the salvation of our.
souls. Amen.</p>

<p>I and my fellow prisoner greet you and all the God-fearing
much.</p>

<p>We had hoped to offer up our sacrifice on Monday before
Mary, and thus to enter into rest; but we were not so
fortunate. Hence we hope that it will soon come to pass, if the
Lord has so ordered it; but if our tribulation is to last a
little longer yet, the will of the Lord be done for our
salvation. Amen.</p>

<p>Written in my bonds, the day after Mary in Lent. A. D. 1572,
by me,</p>

<p class="c5">ADRIAENKEN JANS.</p>

<h2>A LETTER TO SAID ADRIAENKEN JANS IN HER<br />
BONDS. SENT BY HER HUSBAND</h2> 

<p>To the dear wife of my heart, Adriaenken Jan's daughter, out
of love, to strengthen your heart. Amen.</p>

<p>We-ought to obey God rather than men. Acts 5:29.</p>

<p>Grace and peace, wisdom and comfort, be with you, my much
beloved dear wife and sister in the Lord, from God our heavenly
Father; through the great love of His Son Jesus Christ, our
Lord and Saviour, and through the power of the Holy Ghost, and
patience in your bonds; this I wish you, my beloved wife and
sister in the Lord, as an affectionate salutation, to the
praise of the Lord, and to your soul's salvation. Amen. Possess
your soul in patience.</p>

<p>After all cordial salutation, my much beloved wife and
sister in the Lord, I affectionately pray you, that you will
prove valiant in your tribulation and distress, and ever look
unto Jesus Christ the author and finisher of our faith, who,
when the joy was set before Him, endured the cross, despising
the shame. Heb. 12:2. Mark, he says, <i>despising the
shame.</i> Hence go forth without the camp, and help bear His
reproach. 13:13. For when Christ suffered, He had to suffer
without Jerusalem, and there took upon Him our sins, and became
as a worm, greatly despised, says the prophet Isaiah. 53:3. And
Paul says, "Who, being in the form</p>

</div><div id="929"> 

<p>of God, thought it not robbery to be equal with God, but
delivered himself unto death, even the death of the cross."
Phil. 2:6, 8. And Peter says, "Forasmuch then as Christ hath suffered for us in the flesh,
arm yourselves likewise with the same mind: for he that hath
suffered in the flesh hath ceased from sin: that he no longer
should live the rest of his time in the flesh to the lusts of
men, but to the will of God." I Pet. 4:1, 2. Paul also says, "All that will live godly in Christ Jesus shall suffer
persecution" (II Tim. 3:12); as he also tells the Hebrews
(chap. 11) of so many pious witnesses, who through their faith
suffered so much, having respect unto the recompense of the
reward; they were stoned, cut asunder, tempted, slain with the
sword: they wandered about in sheepskins and goatskins: being
destitute, afflicted, tormented; of whom the world was not
worthy; and thus they took the kingdom of God by force, hoping
only from afar for the promise, which they did not yet possess,
as Christ says, "Blessed are the eyes which see what ye now see;
and the ears which hear what ye now hear: for many prophets and
righteous men have desired to see those things which ye now
see, and it could not be." Luke 10: 23, 24; Matt. 13:16, 17.
Paul also says, "God, who at sundry times and in divers manners
spake in time past unto the fathers by the prophets, hath in
these last days spoken unto us by his Son, whom he hath
appointed heir of all things, by whom also he made the worlds;
who being the brightness of his glory, and the express image of
his person, and upholding all things by the word of his power."
Heb. 1:1-3. See now, my dear lamb, how many pious witnesses we
have; hence let us not become weary, but see that we may with
Caleb and Joshua enter the promised land. For you have already
passed through the wilderness, and stand now before the Jordan,
which though it is terrible to behold, you will pass over; only
waver not, all you need do is to pass over. Be valiant, my
lamb; the Lord will help you; put your trust in Him, for He is
our captain, our strong fortress and castle. My dear lamb, be
of good cheer in the Lord; such a glorious crown is awaiting
you, for the Lord says, "Blessed are they who are persecuted for the truth; for
theirs is the kingdom of heaven." Matt. 5:10.</p>

<p>See, my fair one, you will be one of that number whom John
saw under the altar, who were clothed in white robes; and will
help fulfill their number, and the great multitude of whom the
angel told Esdras, II Esd. 2:45. For when the number, or the
company of the righteous is fulfilled, the rewarding will soon
take place. Then shall all your tears be wiped away; the heat
of the sun will hurt you no more, for you shall with all the
chosen children of God rest under His shadow. My dear lamb, if
you now only strive manfully for the truth, it is but for this
life; after this time there is no more time. No man is crowned,
except he strive lawfully. II Tim. 2:5. And James says, "Dear
brethren, we count them happy that have endured." Jas. 5:11.
And Solomon says, that His [God's] people are tried as gold in
the furnace, and when He finds them acceptable, he receives
them as a burnt offering. Wisd. 3:6. Confess now the word of
the Lord before this evil generation; for if we confess Him, He
also will confess us before His heavenly Father, and before His
angels; if we deny Him, he also will deny us; if we believe
not, yet He abideth faithful; He cannot deny Himself. Matt.
10:32. II Tim. 2:12, 13. Nevertheless, the foundation of God
standeth sure, having this seal,"The Lord knoweth them that are
his. And, Let every one that nameth the name of Christ depart
from iniquity." v. 19.</p>

<p>Behold, my dear lamb, here the sentence is already
pronounced. Take heed now, that in your bonds, as you have
begun, you remain faithful for the word of the Lord; that you
may receive a full reward, and lose not that for which you have
so long labored by faith; for whosoever transgresseth, and
abideth not in the doctrine of Christ, hath not God; he that
abideth in the doctrine of Christ, he hath both the Father and
the Son. II John 8, 9.</p>

<p>Dear Jan's daughter, we expect such a glorious crown, if we
abide in the truth; how we will rejoice when we get into the
new heavenly Jerusalem, where the streets are of pure gold; and
her gates are not closed against the penitent, but they are not
open unto the ungodly, for without are dogs and sorcerers. Rev.
21:21; 22:15. See, my dearest lamb, for none but the
God-fearing; for them His grace is always ready, and He will
give them to drink of the beautiful river, which flows through
the fair city; these are the living waters of which the Lord
told the Samaritan woman, that if she should drink of them, she
should never thirst. John 4:14. Behold, my dear rib, of these
waters did all the righteous drink. They drank of that
spiritual Rock that followed them: and that Rock was Christ.
But with many of them God was not well pleased: for they were
overthrown in the wilderness. I Cor. 10:4, 5.</p>

<p>Behold, dear Adriaenken Jans, what virtues the Lord has
shown us, and how richly He has bestowed gifts upon His
children, and how He shall endow them when He shall come to
judge all the nations of the earth. Then shall we tread down
all our enemies, and shall sit with all the elect of God upon
twelve thrones, and judge the twelve tribes of Israel; and
shall stand in great boldness before the face of those that
have afflicted us; and we shall shine as sparks among the
stubble, and leap as calves of the stall, in that day which the
Lord has appointed. Matt. 19:28; Wisd. 5:1; 3:7; Mal. 4:2, 3.
We also read that Esdras saw in the spirit, upon mount Sion,
how the Lord went and gave palms into the hands, and set crowns
upon the heads, of those who had confessed Him in the world. II
Esd. 2:42. Peter also says that we shall be made kings and
priests, that we should shew forth the virtues of Him who hath
called us out of</p>

</div><div id="930"> 

<p>darkness into His marvelous light. Rev. 1:6;1 Pet. 2:9.</p>

<p>Ah! Jan's daughter, my dear wife and sister in the Lord, if
we were to recount all the glorious promises which the Lord has
promised them that continue faithful in their temptation, it
would take too much time to write it all.</p>

<p>Herewith 1 commend you my dear wife and sister in the Lord,
to God, and to the rich Word of His grace, which is able to
keep us from all the subtle wiles with which our adversary the
devil walks about us as a roaring lion, as Peter says. I Pet.
5:8. He could assail the Lord; should he then not assault his
people? for we are not ignorant of his devices (1I Cor. 2:11),
for he works also through his emissaries, that is, the children
of unbelief, who will possibly come to assail you; but we can
well overcome them, we can do all things through the grace of
the Lord, which grace may God grant you and me, and us all.
Amen.</p>

<p>Farewell, and pray the Lord for me, that He may keep me in
this evil time, that I may always walk in the way of the Lord.
I also pray for you, that the Lord will grant you strength,
that you may be an acceptable offering unto Him, and that
through your bonds and through the voluntary surrender of your
body into the tyrants' hands, many may come to the truth.
Though it is somewhat hard for the flesh, the Lord can give
strength to them that trust in Him. Yes, dear Jan's daughter,
my dearest, beloved sister in the Lord, let us take heed and
pray the Lord, that we may well guard ourselves, that we do not
dishonor the temple of God; for thus says Paul (mark
well), "Know ye not that ye are the temple of God, and that the
Spirit of God dwelleth in you? If any man defile the temple of
God, him shall God destroy; for the temple of God is holy,
which temple ye are." I Cor. 3:16, 17. If we guard ourselves
well, it will be well with us, for we have a precious treasure
in earthen vessels, the Spirit of the Lord, the Comforter,
which will not be taken from us, if we fear God, depart from
all sin, and do good.</p>

<p>O my dearest, dismiss from your mind that you went there to
get the bed, for possibly the Lord wants thus to prove you; and
let us not tempt the Lord; He does all for the best; I would
not give you for all the treasures of the world; this the Lord
knows, for He knows every heart. Now that it is so, let it be
so in the name of the Lord. You may readily suppose that
Abraham was sorrowful that he had to offer up his beloved son;
for he was dear to him, and the Lord had told him that his seed
should be as numerous as the dust of the earth and the stars of
heaven. But, my dear lamb, he feared the Lord, and dared not
disobey His command. Thus we, too, have courage, my dear wife;
think, it is only for one evil hour, or half an hour, and all
is over, for much may be done in half an hour. See, my dear, he
that overcometh shall inherit all things; he that overcometh
shall not be hurt of the second death. Rev. 21:7, 2:11.
Wherefore, let them that suffer according to the will of God
commit the keeping of their souls to Him in well doing, as unto
a faithful Creator. I Pet. 4:19. Let us pray for them that
afflict us (that is, the pope and his adherents), that they may
see how blind they are; and also for the magistrates, that they
may no longer seek innocent blood, but be satisfied, and see
wherein they are sinning before God.</p>

<p>Adieu, be resigned in the Lord, my dear wife and sister in
the Lord; take my simple letter in good part, for it has been
written from a good intention.</p>

<p>Written with much sorrow and labor. Nothing more for this
time, only the Lord keep you in a godly life, and preserve you
from the second death. Amen.</p>

<p>By me, your dear husband and weak brother in the Lord, who
am not worthy of the name; but by the grace of the Lord we can
do all things.</p>

<p class="c5">J. VAN DORT.</p>

<p>Written on the 18th and 19th of January, in the year 1572.
Whatever I can do for you is at your service; do not spare me.
Adieu, farewell; put your trust in the Lord alone, and you will
find rest for your soul. Amen.</p>

<p>Yea, the time cometh, that whosoever killeth you will think
that he doeth God service. And these things will they do unto
you, because they have not known the Father, nor me. John 16:2,
3.</p>

<br />

<h1>SEVEN BRETHREN AT BREDA, JAN PIETERSS, GELEYN CORNELISS, PIETER DE GULICKER WITH 
HIS SERVANT, ARENT BLOCK, CORNELIS 
GIJSELAER, AND ONE MICHIEL, IN 
THE YEAR 1572</h1> 

<p>In the year 1572, when many exiles were residing in
Nieuwvaert, near Breda, where they enjoyed a little more
liberty than elsewhere, among whom there were also some who for
the testimony and following of Jesus Christ, had fled thither
from other places; it happened in the beginning of the month of
August of said year, that, many brethren and sisters having
come there from without, from Brabant, from Breda, Sevenbergen,
and several adjacent villages, also from Holland, from Leyden,
Haerlem and elsewhere, which being discovered, it was reported
to the bailiff, while he was sitting at Gerrit Vorster's and
drank with the steward, who hearing this, was filled with anger
and said, "We will disturb that nest, and exterminate that band at
once." Thereupon they gathered an armed force, in the evening
of the fifth of August, about nine or ten o'clock, when these
assembled to hear the preaching, and to marry a couple, in a
house standing on the Voorstraet, in the front part of which
resided Pieter de Gulicker, a tailor, and in the back part, Jan
Pieterss, a weaver, where about one hundred men and women were
assembled together. The steward and the bailiff with their
men</p>

</div><div id="931"> 

<p>came twice to the house to listen, without
accomplishing anything further; but the third time the steward
sent a servant, who found them assembled, by the light of many
candles, engaged in their preaching. Thereupon came the
steward, stadtholder, and bailiff, with all their servants and
people well armed with pistols, halberds, swords, and other
weapons, and thrusting open the doors of the house, they
apprehended some whom they could get; but most of them broke
through the walls, passages, and the roof of the house, and
escaped. In all there were apprehended, Jan Pieterss of
Vlaerdinge,. who lived in the rear part of the house, and
ministered to the assembly with the Word of truth; Pieter de
Gulicker, a tailor, who resided in the front part of .the
house, with one of his apprentices, who was but sixteen or
seventeen years old; Geleyn Corneliss, a shoemaker of
Middleharnisse, near Somerdijck; Arent Block of Sevenberger;
and Cornelis, the son of Koppen de Gijselaer, of Dortrecht; and
two or three women. These having been apprehended they were
brought to Gerrit Vorster's house, and the men put in irons;
bur the women were placed unfettered in a chamber by
themselves, whence they made good their escape. The next day in the morning there
came to these six prisoners Michiel, the uncle of Cornelis de
Gijselaer (married to the widow of Valerius the schoolmaster,
who in the year 1568, about three years prior to this, had been
offered up at Brouwershaven), who having come to visit his
friends, to comfort them from the Word of God in their
tribulation, the bailiff happened upon them and apprehended him
likewise, saying, "You also belong to this people; you must also
stay here with them."</p>

<p>All the property of these prisoners was
immediately written down and confiscated, so that the women and
children had to flee deprived and stripped of everything, which
was lamented by many. In consequence of these things the people
in Nieuwvaert were so terrified, that many dared not stay there
any longer, the more so, as the steward had written to the duke
of Alva, and having received a letter in return, had gone
thither in person. In all, there fled about thirty, brethren as
well as sisters; of those who resided in Nieuwvaert, besides
all the others who had come there from other places.</p>

</div><div id="932"> 

<p>The schoolmaster of Nieuwvaert, called Master Pieter Claess 
van der Linden, who had disputed five hours
with Jan Pieterss (besides that the pastor had also disputed
with him two or three times), and was greatly embittered
against this people, gives nevertheless this testimony
concerning them, that their chief and principal errors
are, "That they do not baptize infants; that they cannot believe
that Christ had His flesh and blood from Mary; and that they
regard themselves as the little flock and the elect of God: But
that, with this exception, their life and conversation is
better than that of many others, and that they also seek to
bring up their children in better discipline and fear of God,
than many other people. That he also had of their children in
his school, who were apter and learned more readily than any
others. That he and many others deeply deplored the great
persecution and vexation inflicted upon these people, and
especially that on account of the men the poor women and
children were so lamentably stripped of all their possessions,
and driven away into misery."</p>

<p>These prisoners were confined in irons, in the house of said
Gerrit Vorster, from the fifth of August, when they were
apprehended in the night, until noon of the seventh, when they
were together taken to Breda, where they were most severely
assailed with examinations, promises, threats, and tortures, to
cause them to apostatize from their faith, and to name their
fellow believers, so that Pieter de Gulicker, unable to resist
the same, abandoned the faith and his God, whereby he
nevertheless did not obtain a release, but was executed with
the sword. But the rest remained steadfast unto the end,
however unmercifully they were treated in the torture. For one
was very cruelly tortured and wounded upon the rack, and while
thus lying, urine was poured into his mouth, and his body
trampled upon; another was fastened below by his feet, his
hands tied behind his back, and he was thus hauled up from
behind, and scourged. But Geleyn, the shoemaker, was tortured
most cruelly of all. They stripped him naked, and suspended him
by his right thumb, with a weight attached to his left foot,
and while thus suspended he was burned under his arms with
candles and fire, and scourged until the two commissaries of
the Duke of Alva, who were present, themselves became tired,
and went away and sat down to play cards, the executioner
looking on, for about an hour, or an hour and a half. Meanwhile
Geleyn was left suspended, who, during all the time that they
played, experienced no pain, but was as though he had been in a
sweet slumber. or in a swoon; yea, he subsequently himself
testified that he never in his life rested on his bed with less
pain, than while he was suspended there. When they had finished
playing, they said to the executioner, "Seize him again; he must
tell us something; a drowned calf is a small risk." Coming to
him, the executioner exclaimed, "The man is dead" (so deep was
his sleep or swoon). Then one of the commissaries darted up,
and shook him so roughly by one arm as tosprain it, which was
not yet healed from the burning. When he began to revive again,
he was let down; but he implicated no one, nor did he deny his
faith, so that he was finally sentenced to the fire with Jan
Pieterss and the young apprentice to be burnt alive. When they
were standing at the stakes, and were being burned, the flames
were wafted away so much from Geleyn, that the executioner had
to hold him into the fire with a fork on the other side of the
stake. Thus these, valiantly adhering to the truth, laid down
their lives for it.</p>

<p>Shortly after, when Cornelis de Gijselaer and Arent Block
were also led to death to be burnt, Arent dropped a later which
he had written, thinking that some one of the friends would
pick it up and get it, but unfortunately, it fell into t1~e
hands of the tyrants, who immediately had the tvio taken back
to prison, whereupon they were yet most dreadfully tortured;
but when they nevertheless constantly remained valiant, named
no one, and in no torture apostatized from their God, they were
finally, like the three preceding ones, also sentenced and
burned; and very soon after also Michiel, the uncle of Cornelis
de Gijselaer followed the others with a like sacrifice.</p>

<p>Thus these now lie together under the altar, and wait for
the number of their brethren to be fulfilled, that they may
then live with them forever in everlasting joy with the Lamb
that was slain, and all the friends of God, and sing the new
song.</p>

<h2>TOUCHING THE COURT PROCEEDINGS AND DEATH<br />
SENTENCES OF THE AFOREMENTIONED MARTYRS</h2> 

<p>We did not spare the pains, to have looked up, through the
mediation of certain of our good friends at Breda, in the
present archives of the year 1659, by the clerk of the recorder
there, every thing that might be noted, and could be found as
recorded by the papistic rulers, of the year 1572, concerning
the imprisonment, sufferings and death of the afore-mentioned
pious witnesses of Jesus Christ. But soon after search for it
had begun to be made, information was received that the
archives where these and similar documents had been preserved
was destroyed and laid in ruins by a terrible conflagration a
few years ago; for which reason nothing could be brought to
light in regard to the matter, except the particular
reminiscences of old writers, from which the above is recorded.
This by way of notice.</p>

<h2>MAERTENS JANSS, A CORN PORTER, AND JAN HEN<br />
DRICKSS OF SWARTEWAEL, A STEERSMAN, BOTH<br />
PUT TO DEATH AT THE STAKE, AT DELFT,<br />
IN HOLLAND, A. D. 1572</h2> 

<p>The city of Delft, in Holland was at this time only a
burying place, yea, a dreadful murderers' den, for the
extirpation of God's saints. This appeared in the case of two
very pious, God-fearing, and most virtuous lambs of Christ, who
had betaken themselves among the flock of the great</p>

</div><div id="933"> 

<p>Shepherd of the sheep, Christ Jesus, to be led and fed by
Him in the green meadows of the true evangelical doctrine. Une
was named Maerten Janss, by trade a corn porter; the other, Jan
Hendritkss, born at Swartewael, a steersman, who followed the
sea for a livelihood.</p>

<p>They were both imprisoned at Delft, where they, for almost
two years, suffered much affliction, anxiety and distress, from
secular as well as spiritual L ecclesiastical j persons, to
make them apostatize from their faith. But as they were founded
upon the immovable cornerstone Christ Jesus, they could in no
wise weaken their faith, much less cause them to apostatize
entirely from it. Hence the rulers at said place, inflamed,
through the instigation of the papistic clergy, with a bitter
hatred against them, pronounced, in court, a very cruel
sentence upon both of them, namely: That they should be tied to
a stake, upon a scaffold to be erected in the market place, and
burned until death should ensue.</p>

<p>Thereupon, on the fifth of February, A. D. 1572, both were
brought upon the scaffold at said place, to die; whereupon the
town clerk read to all the people: That no one was allowed to
speak to them, on pain of forfeiting life and property.</p>

<p>Then Maerten Janss' tongue was seared; yet he nevertheless
boldly said, "Thus I must now testify to the truth; for if I had
not cared for my salvation, I would have escaped much sore
conflict and obtained pardon; but now I have fought a good
fight, finished my course, and kept the faith, and henceforth
there is laid up for me the crown of righteousness."</p>

<p>Then he cried, "O Lord, be merciful to me poor sinner. Who am
not worthy to suffer for Thy name, but Thou hast made me worthy
thereto."</p>

<p>Finally he exclaimed, "O Lord, receive my spirit into Thy
hands." And with this his life was ended he thus departing this
world through fire.</p>

<p>Jan Hendrickss was likewise gagged, to prevent him from
speaking; but when he nevertheless spoke, namely, "Now is the
time, now the truth must be fully sealed," etc., a great
clamoring, confusion and running arose among the people, so
that the lords, filled with fear, caused Jan Hendrickss to be
brought inside, until the commotion and turbulence of the
people had subsided.</p>

<p>After that he was brought forth completely gagged- having
hurriedly been fastened to the stake, he was deprived of this
temporal life by fire, even as his slain fellow brother.</p>

<p>Their dead and half-consumed bodies were brought outside of
the city, to the common place of execution, called Gallows
Hill, where each was separately fastened to a stake, for food
to the fowls of the air.</p>

<p>This was the end of the afore-mentioned two lambs of Jesus,
who, though a spectacle and reproach before the world, before
God became a holy and acceptable sacrifice. OTE.-Having been
furnished from the book of criminal sentences of the city of
Delft, by the secretary there, with an authentic copy of the
sentence of death of the afore-mentioned friends, just as the
same was publicly read in court on the day of their death, we
deem it well to add it here, that the reader may be fully
assured of the truth of the foregoing account. The contents
thereof are word for word as follows</p>

<h2>EXTRACT OF THE SENTENCE OF MAERTEN JANSS, CORN PORTER, CITIZEN OF THIS CITY, AND JAN HENDRICKSS OF SWARTEWAEL, STEERSMAN, PUT TO DEATH WITH FIRE</h2> 

<p>Whereas Maerten Janss, corn porter, citizen of the city of
Delft, and Jan Hendrickss of Swartewael, steersman, prisoners,
have confessed, without torture and iron bonds, to belong to
the evil and reprobated sect of the Anabaptists, and
consequently to have attended various forbidden and improper
meetings; and also confess to be rebaptized, and to have
withheld the holy sacrament of baptism from some of their
infants: that they also hold very evil views concerning the
mass, despising and utterly rejecting the holy sacrament of the
altar, as also all other sacraments, services and ceremonies of
the holy Roman Catholic Church, and, what is worse still
persist and obstinately adhere, to their aforesaid damned
reprobated heresy, without in any wise repenting, or being
willing to abandon it, notwithstanding all the good admonitions
frequently and at divers times addressed to them by various
good spiritual Catholic persons; all of which are most
enormous, wicked and scandalous matters, which for an example
unto others ought not to go unpunished; therefore, the judges
of the city of Delft, according to the import of the decrees
issued by his royal majesty, have ordered, and do order by
these present, the aforesaid Maerten Janss and Jan Hendrickss,
prisoners, to be led upon the scaffold erected in the
marketplace of this city, and there to be tied to a stake and
burned till death ensues, and their dead bodies then to be
brought to the Gallows Hill and there placed at stakes. We
furthermore declare all their property confiscated and
forfeited for the benefit of his royal majesty. We further
condemn the aforesaid prisoners to the costs of their
imprisonment and the expenses of the execution. Done the fifth
of February, A. D. 1572, Delft Style.</p>

<p>NOTE.-The original date seems to be in the year 1570, being
two years earlier; but it is an error, as appears from various
circumstances that follow, as also from the date of the letters
which Jan Hendrickss wrote in prison.</p>

<p>Extracted from the first book of criminal sentences, fol.
195, preserved in the archives of the city of Delft, 23d of
August, A. D. 1659.</p>

<p class="c5">Secretary of Delft.</p><br />


<h1>A LETTER FROM JAN HENDRICKSS, WRITTEN IN PRISON AT DELFT, TO HIS WIFE</h1> 

</div><div id="934"> 

<p>The God of all grace, who has called us from the power of
darkness into His eternal kingdom, through Jesus Christ, and
married us with an everlasting love, as the prophet says, the
same grant you, my dear wife, according to the riches of His
grace and glory, to be strengthened with might by His Holy
Spirit in the inner man, that you may stand steadfast and
immovable in faith and love, and the peace of God, to the
salvation of your soul and the praise of God, that you may
receive the undefiled, incorruptible and unfading inheritance,
together with the crown of eternal life, Amen, which God has
promised to all them that love and serve Him with all their
heart. This, I Jan Hendrickss wish Lijsbeth Jans my dear wife,
from my bonds and in my last time, as a very cordial salutation
in the Lord.</p>

<p>Further, after all proper salutation to you my beloved wife
Liisbeth Jans, I inform you that I am still valiant and of good
cheer in the Lord. and trust to adhere to His Word and truth by
His help. without whose aid it cannot be done; and I trust
that</p>

<p>He will keen my treasure unto the end and deliver me out of
the lions' iaws. that they may not devour me with their teeth.
Thus I trust it is also with you. and I sincerely have this
confidence concerning you that you are still minded and
determined with me to serve Him all the davs of your life in
rip,bteousness and holiness; and I trust that God will
strengthen and keen vnu therein, even as He has hitherto done,
for which praise be to Him forever.</p>

<p>Furthermore. my dear wife. since the time of my departure,
according to human purpose, is very near at hand. I cannot
forget you, but must out of love write you a little yet.
because of the great love which I have to you, and because you
have shown me so much love in my bonds. in various ways by
visiting and writing. for which I thank you very much: may God
in high heaven reward you for it. And I thank you most heartily
for your last letter. which was verv precious, for when we read
it we were so much reioiced by the great consolation that we
both went. And because you love me so. and I you. Therefore I
must still care for you a little, and admonish You as my most
beloved. Not. my dear Tan's daughter, that I have not the
confidence that you will walk in the fear of God; ob, no! I am
confident that you will do nothing but what is good. But that I
exercise this care for you, is done only from pure, clear love,
because I love your soul so very much; hence I very often wish
that you might be taken before me, since I well see how
difficult it is to reach heaven. and how easily man is (led
astrayl, even as Paul warns us I Cor. 10:12, saying, "Let him
that thinketh he standeth take heed lest he fall."</p>

<p>Hence; dear Jan's daughter, take this in good part, this I
pray you, as I trust that you do. And Ifurther admonish and
beseech you, that you always walk in true and unfeigned fear of
God, since the fear of God is the true foundation to please the
Lord, for without the fear of God it is impossible to please
Him. For by the fear of God we guard against evil and shun that
which is wrong; for when we begin to consider that God will
punish sinners so fearfully, we fear Him on that account; for
if this were not so, there would be no need of fearing Him. But
when we begin to consider it, we consequently shun and avoid
that which is wrong; but those that do not fear Him commit much
ungodliness. In the second place, my dear Jan's daughter that
you firmly cleave to the vine Christ, and abide in Him and He
in you, and you shall be as a fruitful branch, full of good and
beautiful fruit; and thus the Father will purge you, that you
may bring forth fruit more abundantly. For he that does not
abide in Him. but departs from Him, the same is cut off from
Him as a withered branch. For your sins, says the prophet,"have
separated between you and your God." Isaiah 59:2. Behold, dear
Jan's daughter, here we have the clear express scripture, by
what a man is cut off from Christ, the vine, and what the
separation is whereby we are separated from God, namely, sin;
for when we sin, we are by the sin separated from God.
Therefore, my dear wife, I beseech you once more, that you
firmly cleave to the Lord and shun sin as you would a serpent.
that you do not come too near it, and be devoured by it; for
the teeth thereof are as the teeth of a lion, slaving the souls
of men. Sir. 21:2. We must beware of sin; for God does indeed
warn man against sin, but He does not prevent him from it, when
he is determined to commit it. as we have many examples in the
Scriptures, as in Adam and others.</p>

<p>In the third place, I beseech you to be patient in the
afflictions that come unon you for Christ's sake, for patience
is a very good thing for Christians, for Christ says, "In your
patience possess ye your souls." Luke 21:19. and Paul likewise
says, "For ye have need of patience. that, after ve have done
the will of God, ye might receive the promise." Heb. 10:36.
Truly indeed may Paul say that we have need of patience, which
I have proven in my bonds. Paul further says, "Let us run with
patience the race that is set before us, looking unto Jesus,
the author and finisher of our faith; who for the joy that was
set before him endured the cross, despising the shame, (and is
set down at the right hand of the throne of God. 1 For consider
him that endured such contradiction of sinners against himself.
lest ve be wearied and faint in your minds." Heb. 12:1-3.</p>

<p>Behold, dear Jan's daughter, thus are we exhorted to
patience, for with patience and resignation we can overcome
much tribulation and affliction; but he that is impatient
cannot stand in the sufferings of Christ. Hence Sirach may
truly say, "Woe unto those that have lost patience, and have
turned aside into perverse ways! how will it go</p>

</div><div id="935"> 

<p>with them when the Lord shall visit them?" Sir. 2: 14. Dear
Jan's daughter, take heed to the holy Scriptures, and in"all
things approve yourself as the minister of God, in much
patience, in afflictions, in necessities, in distresses, in
stripes, in imprisonments, in tumults, in labors, in watchings,
in fastings; by pureness, by knowledge, by thanksgiving, by
kindness, by the Holy Ghost, by love unfeigned, by the word of
truth, by the power of God, by the armor of righteousness on
the right hand and on the left, by honor and dishonor, by evil
report and good report: as deceivers and yet true, as unknown
and yet well known; as dying, and, behold we live; as
chastened, and not killed; as sorrowful, yet always rejoicing;
as poor, yet making many rich; as having nothing, and yet
possessing all things." II Corinthians 6:4-10. See, my most
beloved, mark these words, and watch for the coming of the
Lord; for He shall come as a thief in the night; and always
have oil in your lamp and do not suffer it to go out but always
be ready with the wise and good virgins to let the Lord your
Bridegroom in; and constantly have a burning light in your
hand, and stand with your loins girded to wait that you may not
be surprised; constantly and at every moment walk as you hope
to appear before Him, and do not lie down to sleep with a
troubled or gnawing conscience, but purify your heart before
God and your neighbor, and always act and walk according to the
right rule of the Scriptures, for the Scriptures always point
to Christ, and you cannot be confounded, nor deceived, nor err.
And if you do this, the God of peace shall be with you and
abundantly minister unto you an entrance into eternal life.
Rom. 15:33; II Pet. 1:10, 21.</p>

<p>Hence my dear Jan's child, be patient in all tribulation and
distress and take for an example the afflictions and
longsuffering of Christ, and the prophets, who have spoken to
you in the name of the Lord."Behold," says James,"we count them
happy which endure. Ye have heard of the patience of job, and
have seen the end of the Lord. Blessed is the man that endureth
temptation, for when he is tried he shall receive the crown of
life, which the Lord hath promised to them that love him."
James 5:11; 1:12.</p>

<p>Behold, dear Jan's child, he that overcometh shall inherit
all things and he shall not be hurt of the second death. He
that overcometh, and keepeth my works unto the end, to him will
I give power over the nations; and he shall rule them with a
rod of iron; as the vessels of a potter shall they be broken to
shivers, as Christ has testified of His Father. And to him that
overcometh will I grant to sit with Me in My throne, even as I
also overcame, and am set down with My Father in His throne; to
him that overcometh will I give to eat of the hidden manna, and
will give him a white stone, and in the stone a new name
written, which no man knoweth saving he that receiveth it; he
that overcometh shall inherit all things. Rev. 21:7; 2:11, 26,
27; 3:21; 2:17. In short, dear Jan's child,the Scriptures are
full of the great reward of the righteous; hence set your
affections on things above, and not on things on the earth, for
they who mind earthly things, their end is destruction. Col.
3:2; Phil. 3:19. Strive therefore after imperishable treasures,
which thieves cannot steal, namely, after heavenly riches,
which cannot perish, and will endure forever with the
Father.</p>

<p>Let your meditation be in the word of the Lord, day and
night concern yourself in His commandments and statues, and
watch for His coming, and long for it, and avoid all appearance
of evil, and act not as though you might live many years yet,
but walk before the Lord just as if you were to die
immediately. And let the voice or sound of the angels' trumpets
constantly be in your ears, when the dead shall have to rise
and appear before the judgment seat of Christ, that everyone
may receive according to that he hath done, whether it be good
or bad. II Cor. 5:10. For the Lord Himself, says Paul, shall
descend from heaven with a shout, with the voice of the
archangel, and with the trump of God: and the dead in Christ
shall rise first; then we which are alive and remain shall be
caught up together with them in the clouds, to meet the Lord in
the air; and so shall we be ever with the Lord. I Thess. 4:16,
17.</p>

<p>Wherefore comfort one another with these words, my most
beloved; for the day of the Lord will come as a thief in the
night; in the which the heavens shall pass away with a great
noise, and the elements shall melt with fervent heat, the earth
also and the works that are therein shall be burned up. Seeing
then that all these things shall.be dissolved, what manner of
persons ought we to be in all holy conversation and godliness?
II Peter 3:10, 11. Mark well, my dear Jan's child, what manner
of persons we ought to be, says Peter; let it therefore not
grieve us though we must now suffer much affliction for the
name of Christ. If any man suffer as a Christian, says Peter,
let him not be ashamed, but let him commit his cause to God.
For the time is come that judgment must begin at the house of
God: and if it first begin at us, what shall the end be of them
that obey not the Gospel of God? And if the righteous scarcely
be saved, where shall the ungodly and the sinner appear? I Pet.
4:17, 18. The Proverb also says, "If the righteous be
recompensed here, how will it go with the sinner?" Prov.
11:31."And if they do these things in a green tree," says
Christ,"what shall be done in the dry?" Luke 23:31. Behold, my
most beloved, if Christ the eternal truth had to suffer before
He entered into the kingdom of His Father, how much more His
members? For He Himself says, "The servant is not greater than
his lord. If they have persecuted me, they will also persecute
you; if they have kept my sayings they will keep yours also.
But all these things will they do unto you for my name's sake,
because they know not him that sent me." John 15:20, 21. And if
the righteous must suffer here, where shall the sinner
appear?"Wherefore,</p>

</div><div id="936"> 

<p>let them that suffer according to the will of God commit the
keeping of their souls in well-doing, as unto a faithful
Creator," says Peter. I Pet. 4:19. Thus, my dear Jan's child,.
be resigned as-much as you can; though men separate us here,
hereafter they shall have no power. Then shall we stand in
great boldness before the face of such as have afflicted us and
they shall say, "These are they whom we so often had in
derision, and a proverb of reproach. We fools have missed the
right way, and the way of truth hath not appeared unto us."
Wisd. 5:1.</p>

<p>Charles with his bloody decrees, and all that help to
confirm.them, shall then have no more power. The blood-thirsty
priests shall- then no more hate the people of God-; but we
shall live with the Lord forever and ever, and go in and out as
calves of the stall. Mal. 4:2. Then the great sorrow shall all
be forgotten, since it shall be turned into great joy, which
shall never end, for a thousand years shall seem to be but as
one day because of the great joy. II Pet. 3:8.</p>

<p>Therefore, my most beloved, comfort yourself with these
promises for He is faithful that promised; and wait for them
with patiene'e and longsuffering: and I hope to wait for you
under the altar. Hebrews 10:23; Rev. 6:9, 11.</p>

<p>Herewith I will commend you to God, who brought Israel
through the Red Sea, and through the wilderness, till they were
in the promised land; may He bring you into His eternal
kingdom. I would from the heart that I might take you with me,
but you must bide the time with patience.</p>

<p>Herewith I write you adieu for this brief span of time,
since I do not intend to write you any more after this; but I
hope to speak orally with you in the throne of heaven.</p>

<p>Adieu, dear wife; a thousand times adieu; acquit yourself
valiantly in the truth, and walk truly in the narrow way, until
the Lord comes. I thank you very much from the heart for the
exceedingly great love you have shown me; in time of need love
is appreciated best.</p>

<p>Furthermore, I bid all the friends an earnest farewell, to
name them individually according to the flesh, their number is
too great. And bid my son, Heyndricks Janss, farewell; and tell
him to become a good child; and to fear our dear Lord, for bold
and ungodly children shall not enter into heaven, but go to
hell, and that he learn and go to school, and not run and play
with naughty children, but obey his mother and his grandfather
and grandmother, and not learn to speak evil or lie, for the
mouth that lieth slayeth the soul. Wisd. 1:11. Further,
Lijsbeth Jans, the letters at Delft you may let her keep, and
thus you will have no trouble with them, since she intends to
let the readers read them first, as they write me. I send you
with this letter, three pieces of money, of which each of you
shall have one for a medal of remembrance, you one, my son one,
and my daughter one; to my daughter, however, you may give the
smallest one, if, youplease to do so. You may excuse the woman
from paying for the bed and the cloak, and I thank him much.
Now, my dear Jan's child, acquit yourself valiantly. I herewith
write you adieu, adieu, dear Jan's child; be as resigned as you
can; you would have had to resign yourself to it, if I had been
lost at sea; once we must part. You may return home. Pray the
Lord for me; I hope not to forget you. Greet the friends,
wherever it is convenient. Adieu, my dear Jan's child; you know
why I suffer.</p>

<p>Written on the 4th of February, A. D. 1571, by me,</p>

<p class="c5">JAN HENDRICKSS.</p>

<h2>SOME EXAMINATIONS OF JAN HENDRICKSS</h2> 

<p>Since some brethren have requested me to write them
something concerning what the lords have asked me touching my
faith, when I was before them, I can therefore not refuse to
write them a little in regard to the answer which I gave them
according to the simple fisherman's understanding which the
Lord has given me; the bailiff also did not ask me very much or
very thoroughly, as you will yet hear. Further, when I had been
in confinement forty weeks, on the fifth of June, A. D. 1570,
if T remember rightly, I was taken down the first time to
appear before the lords; and when I entered the sheriff's hall,
the judges with the bailiff and also the burgomasters were
assembled there. I uncovered my head and bade them good day,
and they did the same to me. The bailiff then told me to sit
down upon a bench, which I did, whereupon he asked me how old I
was. I said that I did not know it accurately;"but," said I"you
may write twentyeight years;" and so it was written."Where were
you born?""At Swartawael.""How long have you resided in the
Haven?" I said, "Five years, counting the time I have been
confined here.""Yes, that is all the same," said the
bailiff.</p>

<p>He then asked me why I had not my children baptized. I
said, "Because I have never read that the apostles baptized
infants, nor is it found in the Scriptures." And so it was
written, "Jan Hendrickss has confessed to us that he has not had
his children baptized, and this because he has never read in
the Scriptures that children were baptized." The bailiff then
asked me how many children I had, whether I did not have more
than the two whom he had caused to be baptized. I said, "None.""How old are the children?" <i>Ans.</i> "The older is
three years, and the other about one year."</p>

<p>Then the bailiff asked me whether I had been aware that
children were baptized. I said, "Yes, I have seen it myself."
Ques."Why then did you not have your children baptized? Or are
you better or wiser than your forefathers?" <i>Ans.</i> "That I
have not had my children baptized, is because I have never read
that infants are baptized." Then they said that whole
households were baptized. <i>Ans.</i> "While households are
indeed spoken of, but it is written that they all rejoiced that
they had come to believe in the Lord, which infants can not</p>

</div><div id="937"> 

<p>do." This some of the lords admitted. The clerk then asked
me where it was forbidden to baptize infants. I asked him where
it was forbidden to throw dice. He said that it was forbidden
enough, but he could not prove it to me. Then I said, "It is
nowhere forbidden; yet every one knows that it is an evil
practice," and they also admitted that it was not good. I
further said that the Scriptures do not forbid everything that
is evil, and that no one should institute the practice of
baptizing infants, unless he is able to prove it from the
Scriptures. The bailiff then asked me whether I had had myself
baptized. <i>Ans."I</i> had myself baptized once, and I know of
but one baptism." Then the bailiff asked me whether I had
received more than the baptism administered to me in my
infancy. <i>Ans."I</i> had myself baptized once according to
the Scriptures, the last day of March, '63." Then the bailiff
said, "It was in '64; you confessed so to me yourself, when I
apprehended you.""It was in '63, said I; but I shall not deny
it, whether it is a year more or less." Then the bailiff
said, "We may have misunderstood each other"; and he had it
written thus, "Jan Hendrickss had himself baptized the last day
of March, '63, and this according to the Scriptures.""Then you
were not very old yet," said the bailiff."This is true, I
said."</p>

<p>He then asked whether I did not know that I was baptized in
my infancy."I have heard it said," said I,"but I do not
remember it.""This indeed I believe" said the bailiff."What man
was it that baptized you, and where was he from, and what was
his name?" <i>Ans."I</i> did not ask him what his name was, I
had never seen him, nor have I ever seen him since that time,
as far as I know.." This was written exactly as I confessed it
to them. <i>Ques.</i> "Where does he reside?" <i>Ans."I</i> do
not know." <i>Ques."Do you</i> not know where he was from?"
<i>Ans."I</i> do not want to tell you this; I do not wish to
name any one." <i>Ques.</i> "Why?" <i>Ans.</i> "Because I do not
wish to bring any one into trouble; there are enough in trouble
now, and you have trouble enough with us." <i>Ques.</i> "Was no
one present when you were baptized?" <i>Ans.</i> "Yes."
<i>Ques.</i> "Who were they and what were their names?"
<i>Ans."I</i> do not wish to tell." <i>Ques.</i> "Where did it
occur and in what place?" <i>Ans.</i> "In Holland." Then the
bailiff said, "Holland is large; in what place?" Then I
said, "Why would you ask me much for the place; if I were to
tell you the place, you would demand to know still more; but I
do not wish to implicate any one."</p>

<p>Finally I told them the place, and said that it had taken
place in Delfshaven. <i>Ques.</i> "In what house?" <i>Ans."I</i>
do not wish to tell." <i>Ques.</i> "What was the name of the
people that were in that house?" <i>Ans."I</i> do not wish to
name any one." <i>Ques.</i> "Why are the people in that house so
sacred that they may not be named?" <i>Ans.</i> "If you knew
them, you would not leave them in peace; and I do not wish to
implicate any one; you have trouble enough with us." Then the
bailiff began to askhow long I had had my wife, and where I had
married her. <i>Ans.</i> "About five years," and I told them
that I had married her before the Christian church.
<i>Ques.</i> "Before what church? you certainly did not marry
her before the church that stands in Delfshaven?"
<i>Ans."No."</i> And so it was written that I had married her
before the Christian church. <i>Ques.</i> "Who was present?"
<i>Ans.</i> "I do not wish to tell you."</p>

<p>Then the bailiff said that I should name the persons, or he
would torture me. <i>Ans.</i> "Sir Bailiff, who taught you
this?" Then the bailiff said that he had power to do thus with
me, and threatened me greatly, and when he heard that I would
name no one, he told the clerk to write, "Jan Hendrickss has
confessed to us such and such things (such as I told them). but
he has named no one, and this because he did not wish to
implicate any one;" and so it was written. When the bailiff had
thus interrogated me, and wished me many miles away, I said to
them,"I would fain be in Hitland." Then the bailiff said, "Where
is that, where the busses catch the herring?""Yes.""I indeed
would that you were there," said the bailiff,"with all those
that are of your persuasion." Then one of the lords, who, I was
told was a burgomaster, wanted to speak to me concerning
baptism, and asked me that if a man should lead a Christian
life, but did not have himself baptized. whether he could not
be saved: whether it would be an obstacle in the way of his
salvation? I replied, "No-, else salvation would he by the
water; but baptism is a command of Christ. hence it must be
practiced." Then I think he said, that it was our view that
infants ought not to be bantized. and asked me when they were
to be baptized. and how old thev had to be. Thereupon I replied
to him that the Scriptures specify no vear, whether they were
twenty, or thirtv. or fifty, or a hundred: whenever they
repented, and requested it, it might be done: and so we use it.
but not sooner, said I and so did Christ teach, and the
apostles practice it. Then they said that at that time it had
to be so, that adults were baptized, but now the infants must
be baptized, for then was the beginning or commencement; this
was their pretense. I then asked the burgomaster whether
Christ, Matt. 28 and Mark 16, had not commanded to go and teach
all nations, baptizing them in the name of the Father, and of
the Son, and of the Holy Ghost; and whether the apostles had
not observed the same, and had first taught the people and then
baptized them? This he admitted; for we find, he said, that
about five thousand were baptized at one time. Thereupon I
think I asked him whether he confessed that adult persons were
baptized at that time."Yes," he said."Well then, we certainly
find clearly enough, that the apostles lived more than ten or
twenty years in the world, and they first baptized adult
persons, as you confess yourself; and this had therefore to be
done so at that time, because it was in the beginning: now,
since we find that they lived to the</p>

</div><div id="938"> 

<p>world so long, infants enough must have come into the world
in this long period of years;" this he also acknowledged. Then
I said, "Now show me once where the apostles in this long time
baptized infants; and transferred baptism upon infants; for you
say that then adult persons had to be baptized, but now
infants. If the apostles had wanted to change baptism, or
wanted that it should be changed, they had time enough
themselves, for they were long enough in the world, for Paul
says: 'I have not shunned to declare unto you all the counsel
of God"' (Acts 20:27); but they could not prove it to me. Then
the oldest judge said that they would prove it to me, but it
was not done; and the same judge said that God created man
once, and no more; and He commanded circumcision to Abraham
once and no more; and He commanded baptism once, and no more.
Ans, "This is true. Now, if God created the man Adam once, and
no more, and commanded them circumcision once, and no more, and
commanded them baptism once, and no more, and they observed the
same, and did not change it, why then have they changed baptism
from adult persons to infants?" Then they said, "Who has changed
it?" Ans."The Pedobaptists." Then they told and begged me to
consider the matter well, that it was not a convenient thing to
be burnt. I replied, "I know that well; I have no desire to be
burnt-it is not convenient to be burnt; if I did not know that
I am right, I would rather ignominiously yield; than honorably
lose my life; for it is no small matter to suffer one's self to
be burnt at the stake; I am not so desirous of death, I would
rather keep my life, if it were God's will.""Yes," said
they,"consider it well." Then the bailiff said, "Jan Hendrickss, you have confessed this to us (and he had
my confession read before my eyes, all that I had confessed);
now if you will yield. my lords will do their utmost to procure
your release." Ans."My lords, I am quite open to conviction; if
you can prove to me that I am wrong, and when I can feel, that,
I will desist from that which is evil." That was well, they
said. and they told me to ask the Lord for grace, that He would
grant me a good understanding."That I will gladly do," said I.
This lasted about an hour and a half, whereupon they had me
conducted up above again. These are the principal questions
which they asked me, and which I have remembered. and these are
my simple fisherman's answers which I made, as far as I can
remember, for it was written six weeks after I was before the
lords; for there was a man confined with us, and for this
reason we dared not write, but to write the words exactly as
they were spoken, would be impossible for me, for my memory is
weak.</p>

<p>A few days after I was taken below again before my lord the
bailiff and a young priest, the chaplain of the Old Church, and
thus three of us were in the sheriff's hall. The priest then
began to relate how he had had a conversation with a man, and
that they had had many words together concerning the holy
Scriptures, and about this burning and killing,for there had
recently four priests been put to death in the Hague, and the
priests had said to one another that there were many different
views in the world concerning the holy Scriptures, and each
died for his belief, and yet there was but one true. This the
priest told me, and said to me that they had many words; and
the man had requested the priest that he should talk with me;
so the priest said. I then asked, "What kind of man was it?""He
was of your persuasion," he said,"a sailor, and a man like you
are." Then it occurred to me who it was, but he is not of our
persuasion, for I had already heard of him; and thus we fell
into an animated conversation, and the priest asked me, whom I
acknowledge as true, for there are so many persuasions. I
said, "What have I to do with another, I have enough to do with
myself." He asked whether there was more than one faith that
was true."No," said I. And there fell very many words, and the
bailiff listened, and greatly strengthened the priest in what
he said; and whenever I quoted Scripture against them, the
priest was immediately on hand to obscure what I said, so that
I could not finish my remarks, and he frequently said to
me, "You are forever coming with the holy Scriptures.""Yes,"
said I,"with what should I come? I have nothing else.""Yes,"
said he,"I well know that you always come with the Scriptures,
and much with the passage, II Thess. 2:15, where Paul says:
'Mark therefore, dear brethren, and hold the traditions which
ye have been taught, whether by word or epistle."' Mark well
the term word; by that he frequently wanted to prove that there
was more Scripture than was written, which we were also bound
to observe, as far as I could comprehend his assertion, for he
frequently made it before I could understand it. But it is only
a stumbling block-how can we observe more than what is written?
Their sole aim is to obscure the understanding of the
Scriptures, since they are well aware that with the Scriptures
they will fall short; and they also cannot well bear it that we
quote the Scriptures of the New Testament, for whenever we do
this, their first question is why we quote more from the
Testament, than from other writers, and whereby we know that
the Testament is true; and they then come with many sophistical
questions, which are not edifying, and skip from one thing to
another. But when they can find any Scriptures in the Testament
that are on their side, these must stand, yea, then the Word of
God must stand forever. For we came to speak of the breaking of
bread, where Paul says, "Take, eat; this is my body." I Cor.
11:24. This language had to stand just as it was. I asked him
more than once, whether the bread which they gave men was the
body of Christ. He said, "Yes; when we have pronounced the words
over it, it is His flesh and blood, yea, soul and body, " it is
the truth what I write. Thereupon I said, "I have eaten the
bread with you people, but I could not feel in my mouth, that
it became flesh, but it remained bread even as it was."</p>

</div><div id="939"> 

<p>And we had many words with regard to it. I said that Christ
Himself says, "Flesh and blood profit nothing; but the words
that I speak are spirit and life." John 6:63. He then came with
a sophism, asking whether the flesh of Christ was not good for
anything.</p>

<p>Thus we had many words. I said that it was written that the
Most High dwelleth not in temples made with hands, neither is
worshiped with men's hands. - Acts 17:24, 25."Yes," said the
priest,"as though He needed any one; for He does not need us,
but we need Him." Then he asked me what I held concerning the
matter, or the like. I replied that Paul says, I Cor.
10:15-18, "I speak as to wise men; judge ye what I say. The cup
of blessing which we bless, is it not the communion of the
blood of Christ? The bread which we break, is it not the
communion of the body of Christ? For we being many are one
bread, and one body; for we are all partakers of that one
bread. Behold Israel after the flesh: are not they which eat of
the sacrifices partakers of the altar?" Thus I confess that
there is but one communion of Christ, for Paul explains it with
a simile, saying, "Behold Israel after the flesh: are not they
which eat of the sacrifices partakers of the altar?""Now, I
ask," I said to them,"what was it that Israel ate, the altar or
the sacrifices?" They said, "The sacrifices;" but they said it
reluctantly."That is right," said I;"yet they were partakers of
the altar: so it is also with those who help to break or eat
the bread; they eat only bread, and are yet partakers of the
body of .Christ." I asked whereby he would maintain his mass.
He brought forward the passage, I Corinthians 11:24, "This do in
remembrance of me." By this he maintained his mass. ."Well,
there is nothing said about a mass," said I. This was his
defense of the mass. I asked him whether a man might be
apprehended for his faith. He affirmed it. I said, "Paul
certainly says: 'A man that is a heretic, after the first and
second admonition, reject;' but he says nothing about
apprehending." Titus 3:10."It is written," said the
priest,"that the magistracy does not bear the sword in
vain.""Yes," said I,"for the punishment of the evil, and for
the protection of the good; but what evil have I done?" They
said, "You have adhered to false doctrine, and attended
assemblies that are opposed to the Roman religion, which the
king will not tolerate, for he wants to protect his country;
for it was seen what those of Munster did; their object was to
capture cities, and to deprive the king of his country."
Ans."The Munsterites did wrong; have you heard such things of
me? I have never in my life known the Munsterites.""No; but the
Munsterites sprang from you.""Well then,.it would have been
time enough for you to apprehend me, when you had heard such
things of me; for no one can be burned justly, except he first
have done evil himself, and not on account of another." But
the-priest strenuously defended the authorities in this; that a
man might be apprehended for his faith. I said, "Christ
certainly said to His servants, when they wanted to root up the
tares, that they should not do it, but that they should let
both grow together till the day of harvest." Matt. 13:30. The
priest said, "But one can go and root up the tares along the
edge, without injuring the good." Ans."Christ commands not to
do it, but to let it grow." But the priest constantly charged
it upon the magistracy, that the apprehending was their work,
just as though the ministers of the Romish church had been
without guilt in the matter. I then asked them whether my lord
the bailiff of Delft, who was with us, was a brother and
minister in their church. This I asked him many times; but the
priest would not give me a clear answer with -regard to it, but
jumped from one thing to another. However, I did not desist,
until he made a definite answer, which he did, but with great
reluctance. When the bailiff saw that we disputed so warmly, he
came and stood before us, and listened with close attention;
then I pressed the matter only the harder. Finally he
said, "Yes.""Then you acknowledge him as a brother and minister
in your church?""Yes," said the priest."Well then, now I desire
you to show me where the apostles had magistrates in their
church, who protected the faith with fire, water and the sword,
as you do." This he could not prove to me, but came with the
passage in Acts 23, where Paul was imprisoned, and more than
forty men had vowed neither to eat nor to drink till they
should have killed Paul. Paul's sister's son hearing this, made
it known to Paul, and Paul sent him to the chief captain, that
he should tell it to him. And when the chief captain heard it,
he said to two other captains, that they should make ready the
beasts, and set Paul thereon, and bring him safe unto Felix the
Governor; with two hundred soldiers, threescore and ten
horsemen, and two hundred spearmen.</p>

<p>Thereupon I replied, "Paul was then a prisoner, and that
magistrate was an unbeliever; but show me once where they had
magistrates in their church.""Yes," said the priest,"if
unbelievers did this, how much more believers." I asked where
the apostles had baptized bells. He said, "We do not baptize
bells.""What do you teach them then?" said I. He said that they
blessed or exorcised them, if I have remembered his words
correctly;"For," said he,"Satan is much in such things;" and he
related how he had reigned in the New Church, and therefore
this was done, as he said; and there was a great deal said.</p>

<p>I said to him that I had never read that the apostles had
magistrates in the church, who protected their faith with the
sword; but that I had read that Paul says, "We wrestle not
against flesh and blood, but against principalities, against
powers, against the rulers of the darkness of this world." Then
the priest started up, and asked where this was written."In
Eph. 6:12," said I. Then he took up his Testament and looked
for it, and having read it he said, "This Paul says of the
devil; he is the</p>

</div><div id="940"> 

<p>prince of this world." I said, "It is the magistracy of this
world, who rule the world, for it speaks of principalities and
lords of this world." And there fell many words, the bailiff
listening with attention. The priest said that our faith had
not existed long, but that their faith had endured fifteen
hundred years, and though whole countries were apostatizing
from it, said he, whole countries were being converted in
India, and that many great signs and miracles occurred there,
even as occurred in the time of Christ, so that the Christians
were increasing. Then I said, "Does that occur there, and not
here? the church is certainly also here in these lands, and
there are pastors in Delft, and in other cities hereabout, as
well as there." He said, it was certainly true."Yes," said
I,"Pharaoh's magicians also imitated what Moses did.""Yes,"
said the priest,"that was so, but they did not do such things
as occurred there." Then I said, "Well then, I will adduce to
you still more: we read that there was a sorceress, who caused
Samuel to come forth from the grave, and Samuel talked with her
or with Saul." I Sam. 28."That is true," said the bailiff;"I
have read that." Then said I,"Christ Himself also says that
they shall say: 'Lord, have we not in thy name cast out devils?
But he shall answer them: Depart from me; I know you not."'
Matt. 7:22, 23. Then the bailiff said, "Jan Hendrickss does not
believe it; do you, Jan Hendrickss?""No; Sir Bailiff," said
I,"there is so much villainy perpetrated.""Yes," said the
priest,"there has much indeed been done that was not good;" and
he related that there had been popes who had not done what was
good, but what was wrong. This the priest himself acknowledged;
but"there was now," said he,"an old, able man pope, of whom
much good was said, and he confessed that there were bad abuses
among them.""Paul says," said I,"that the old leaven ought to
be purged out, and that if any man that is called a brother be
a drunkard, or a railer, or a fornicator, with such a one we
ought to have nothing to do;" but of this, as it seemed, he had
little understanding."Indeed," said the bailiff,"if there were
a man who would have to do with another man's wife, I should
not want to have anything to do with him."</p>

<p>The priest then I think asked me why I had left them? I said
that I had indeed heard the priests preach a great deal, very
severely censuring popery, but that they did not practice what
they preach; that they drank to such an excess as to fight,
strike and rave as though they had been madmen, and for this
reason I left. This I confessed to him because the bailiff was
present; when there were no lords present, I did not wish to
bring up their things. I said, "They always want to instruct us
in prison; they ought to set us at liberty, and then instruct
us;" but of this nothing was said. And having thus many words
together, I asked the bailiff, saying, "Sir Bailiff, I must ask
you something: if I should renounce my faith: however I do not
say that.""Will," said thebailiff,"I do not say it either, that
you do.""But if I did, would you assure me of my life, and
release me.""This I will not say, but I still say as my lords
said, that we will do our best in that respect.""Yes, Sir
Bailiff," said I,"what would that signify; it has happened that
persons have renounced their faith, and were put to death
notwithstanding, as has been seen in Delft.""Yes," said the
bailiff,"some were also released." This I had to ask him once,
to hear what he would say; for we had talked about it together.
Not that we intended to renounce our faith, but to hear what
they would say. For it has never been my mind, nor have I ever
had any inclination for it; but it afforded me a good . reason,
when they tormented us to renounce, to give them this for an
answer. Why should we renounce our faith? our life is not
assured us. We had many words together, but these are the
principal things that were said which I have remembered, for my
memory is not strong. If I were to write everything, I should
require much paper, for it lasted full four hours. In
consequence of its lasting so long, my fellow brethren were
very sorrowful, for they thought and believed that I had been
confined elsewhere away from them.</p>

<p>The bailiff then rang the bell, and the beadles came. I then
said to the priest, "If my lord had not been present, I would
not have made so many words with you.""That I believe," said
the priest. I took off my cap and bade them good evening, and
they me. And I said to the pastor and begged him, that if I had
spoken any word too hastily, he should excuse me for it."Yes,"
said the bailiff,"and so do you to him, do you not?""Yes," said
I: and thus we parted.</p>

<p>It further happened that they confined us all three in
separate places, apart from one another, and took away the
Bible from us, one which they themselves had let us have, and
which the bailiff had previously consented that we might have;
but we remained of very good cheer, the Lord be praised.</p>

<p>On Sunday, the 16th of July, 1570, I was taken down again,
and they tied my arms, which they had never done before, for I
had gone down with the jailer, fettered together with another.
This surprised me much, whereupon the beadles told me, that the
priests had required it of the bailiff. Thus they brought me
before two priests, namely, Mr. Maerten, and the pastor of the
New Church, who had once before been to see me. When I came to
them, I bade them good day, and they returned the salutation.
Then they said, "We have visited you once, and now we come
again, to see whether you are not more willing to yield, than
you were the other time." I said, "I say as I have already said:
If it can be proved to me clearly and expressly, that infants
were baptized, I will gladly suffer myself to be instructed."
With this answer they were not well pleased, since they have no
Scripture for it. But they asserted that I must suffer myself
to be instructed, and that infants had of a long time been</p>

</div><div id="941"> 

<p>baptized in the Christian church; and that it had always
been an ordinance; but I held to the proof furnished by the
practice of the apostles. They said that we ought to walk in
the old paths."Yes, in the right ones," said I;"thus it is
written." Jer. 6:16. They had come to instruct me."Yes," said
I,"I cannot understand it so." This they did not like to hear,
that I could not understand it; and they said, "You want to
understand it before you accept it.""It is written," said
he,"in the prophet Isaiah, that we must first accept it, before
we believe it.""Where is it written?" said I."I do not know,"
said the priest."Rpm. 10:10," said I,"we read: 'With the heart
man believeth unto righteousness; and with the mouth confession
is made unto salvation.' I must certainly believe your things
with the heart, if I am to accept them</p>

<p>but now I cannot understand it as you do." This they would
not hear; but if I had soundly assented with the mouth to what
they said, whether I had believed it or not, it would have been
all right.</p>

<p>They begged me much, that I should suffer myself to be
instructed, there was not a day that they did not pray for us.
They also frequently said that I had strange views, and that I
was damned; if I were not damned, God would not be God, he
said; and the Scriptures would not be true; this he often said.
To be damned. and to lie in prison, these are not good things,
said I; for I said as little to them as I could. But the
damning did not hurt me; I let them say on. I said, "If you can
prove to me, that infants were baptized, I would like to hear
it." They said that whole households were bantized, and
declared that there must have been children there.
<i>Ans.</i> "That you do not know, for there are households in
which are no children; I also do not seek salvation from the
water." When they heard this they were greatly
astonished."Yes," said I,"you say that all unbaptized children
are damned.""Yes," said the priest,"they are damned.""Then the
women who give birth to such children are badly off.""Yes,"
said the priest."Indeed," said I,"then the water must wash away
sin?""Yes," said they. <i>Ans."I</i> shall prove to you, that
it does not." I then told them, that in Peter 3:21 it is
written, " 'The like figure whereunto even baptism doth also
save us, not the putting awav of the filth of the flesh, but
the answer of a good conscience.' And the apostle baptized
Simon the sorcerer but the water did not remove his sins, for
it is written that he was in the gall of bitterness, and in the
bond of iniquity, though he had been baptized by the
apostles.""You say of Peter," said the priest."that he writes
this; how do you know if it is true? Did Peter tell you
himself? And Simon the sorcerer was a worthless fellow for if
the apostles had known that his heart was in this condition,
they would rather have bitten their fingers, than pronounced
the name of God over him." <i>Ans.</i> "This I admit; but the
water did nevertheless not wash away his sins." And they
asserted that I must suffer myself to be instructed, and said
that I acted contrary to the Scriptures, for it is written,
Matthew 18, "If thy brother shall trespass against thee, rebuke
him; and if he will not hear thee, tell it to the
college.""See," said they,"you will not hear us now that we
rebuke you; in this you certainly act contrary to the
Scriptures." <i>Ans.</i> "What would you teach me then? Would
you let me go then, and shun me as a heathen and a
publican?""No, no," said the priest,"this is your favorite
theme, which you always bring up." (For I had had many words
with him in regard to it the last time;) but to let me go was
not in their power, he said. <i>Ans.</i> "Christ certainly says,
when they are reproved, and will not hear, they are to be
shunned, and not apprehended. And Paul also says: 'A man that
is a heretic, after the first and second admonition, reject?'
Tit. 3:10. And now I will not hear you, hence you ought to let
me go." But they did not listen to this, that was the
magistracy's business, they said. <i>Ans."You</i> certainly
have a faith; show me once where the apostles had magistrates
in their church."</p>

<p>Then the priest said that Peter had killed two persons.
<i>Ans."You</i> cannot prove that to me, neither by word nor
deed." Then he read from a German Testament, that Ananias and
his wife sold their possessions; and did not bring all and lay
it at the apostles' feet, but kept back a part of it. Then
Peter said: Ananias, why hath Satan filled thine heart to lie
to the Holy Ghost? thou hast not lied unto men, but unto God.
When Ananias heard these words, he fell down and gave up the
ghost. Three hours after his wife came, and Peter asked her
too, whether they had sold the land for so much. She said: Yea.
Peter said to her: How is it that you have agreed together to
tempt the spirit of the Lord? behold, the feet of them which
have buried thy husband are at the door, and shall carry thee
out. Then fell she down straightway at his feet and yielded up
the ghost. Acts 5. When he had read, I said, "Who can say that
Peter did it, for it reads that when they heard these words
they gave up the ghost." We had many words which I have partly
forgotten; they begged me to suffer myself to be
instructed."Well," said I,"I can not understand it so." To this
they would not listen, that I would first understand it, before
I accepted it; and they said that their faith had always
existed for fifteen hundred years; they would show to me from
year to year, how their church had been built up, and they
named to me many of their teachers or bishops, Augustine and
others; how it first came from Spain into France, whence St.
Willeboort brought it into these countries; and many other
things did they tell me. And though whole countries apostatized
from them. there were large countries again that adopted their
faith, as for instance in India, where the Lord did great
signs, so that there were persons who in one, month learned
another language, and accepted the faith, and even preached
within one month; and many other things they told me. I asked
whether that country was large. They said, "As large as Spain,
France, Germany and this country taken together."</p>

</div><div id="942"> 

<p>Thus their faith had always existed, and could not perish,
for Christ had said, "I will be with you unto the end of the
world;" but our faith had not existed so long; for [said they]
you can not prove to us, that your church has always existed."I
know," said the priest,"that you will name to me five or six
persons." Then I said: It would have been much better, if he
had heard Micaiah, than the four hundred false prophets. (The
king of Judah, I Kings 22) . They tried hard to draw me out, as
to whether I was baptized, but the Lord kept my lips, and I did
not tell them. They had heard it said, they told me. I asked
whether they had heard me to say it. They said, "No." I
replied, "I do not want to tell you either." They said, "We do
not wish to know it."</p>

<p>And when they found that I would not listen to them, they
told me time and again that I was damned, and that I was a
murderer of souls, that I had murdered many souls, and they had
heard it said that I had caused many to apostatize from the
Roman church. I said, "I have murdered no one's soul." He
said, "You say that we are murderers ourselves." I said, "You
have not heard me say that." They told me to consider the
matter, and if I desired it, they would come again. Thus we
parted amicably.</p>

<p>These are the principal points of our conversation, for it
lasted about two hours. I should not be able to write the whole
of it, for I can not remember it, and it would be impossible
for me to give the exact conversation, without leaving out or
adding to it.</p>

<p class="c5">Written by me, JAN HENDRICKSS</p>

<h2>ANOTHER LETTER BY JAN HENDRICKSS, TO MAER<br />
TEN JANSS, HIS FELLOW PRISONER</h2> 

<p>The eternal God of all grace, who has called us with a
heavenly calling, from the power of Satan into His eternal,
marvelous kingdom, strengthen and confirm you, my brother
Maerten Janss, with His holy Word, and give you the power of
the Spirit, that you may be able to resist all the wicked wiles
of the Evil One, whether through himself, or through his
emissaries, so that you may be able to stand in this grace; and
grant you and me a valiant faith, firmly rooted and grounded,
that you may neither be moved nor cast down by the great
tempest of false doctrine. This, I Jan Hendrickss, your weak
fellow brother in imprisonment, tribulation and affliction,
wish Maerten Janss, my dear brother, in his bonds and
imprisonment, as a friendly salutation in the Lord, for the
refreshing of your mind. Amen.</p>

<p>Further, my dear brother, I inform you, that I am still of
good cheer in the Lord, and my heart and mind have still no
other purpose than to fear Him, and to adhere to His holy Word,
according to my great weakness, with the help of God. Without
whose assistance I am, utterly powerless to perform the same.
Thus I hope and am confident in myheart, that it is also with
you. I furthermore thank you much for the comforting letters
you have sent me to refresh and console me in my tribulation,
and that you still remember me in your prayers, which I also do
for you, that we may help each other fight in this great
conflict, which we now have with the great red dragon, which
draws the third part of the stars from heaven with his tail.
Revelation 12:3, 4. When I read your letters, it was no sorrow
for me to hear that you were of such good cheer and courage in
the Lord, but it rejoiced my spirit. Hence, my dear brother,
let us take good heed to, and well consider, the teaching and
admonition of Paul, where he says, "As ye have therefore
received Christ Jesus the Lord, so walk ye in him, rooted and
built up in him." Col. 2:6, 7. Mark, dear brother, it is
needful that we ~attend to these words and admonition of Paul.
For since we have put on Christ by baptism, and have become
members of His body, let us walk in Him, rooted and built up in
Him, and firmly abide in Him, even as He says, "Abide in me, and
I in you. As the branch cannot bear fruit of itself, except it
abide in the vine; no more can ye, except ye abide in me. I am
the vine, ye are the branches. He that abideth in me, and I in
him, the same bringeth forth much fruit; for without me ye can
do nothing. If a man abide not in me, he is cast forth as a
branch, and is withered; and men gather them, and cast them
into the fire, and they are burned." John 15:4-6. Mark, dear
brother, how well it is with him that is in Christ, and Christ
in him: but he who has no consciousness of Christ, is like a
branch that is cut off and withered, which receives no sap or
strength, nor the nature of the stem of the vine.</p>

<p>Dear brother, let us now earnestly consider the matter,
whether this is not the case with men. Let us therefore abound
in him with thanksgiving, and by him offer the sacrifice of
praise to God continually, that is, the fruit of our lips, that
we be not spoiled through philosophy and vain deceit, after the
traditions of men, after the rudiments of the world, and not
after Christ. Heb. 13:15; Col. 2:8."For it is now an evil time,
a time that searches and tries Christians, whether they are
firmly rooted and built in the faith. For when a woman has
conceived, and the time of her delivery is drawing nigh, before
she is delivered, great pain comes upon her, which is the
forerunner and sign of her impending delivery; but when she is
delivered, she soon forgets the great pain, because she has
gotten a child.</p>

<p>Behold, my dear brother, thus it is also with us now; the
great temptation and vexation, conflicts without, and fears
within, which happen to us daily, these are our pains which
precede delivery, whereby we may perceive, that the time of
delivery is fast approaching; but as soon as we are delivered,
then we shall remember it no more; namely, when we shall have
put off this tabernacle, the mortal clothing, that shall be the
last of our pain; then we may say, "O death, where is thy</p>

</div><div id="943"> 

<p>sting? O grave, where is thy victory? The sting of death is
sin; and the strength of sin is the law. But thanks be to God,
which giveth us the victory through our Lord Jesus Christ." I
Cor. 15:55-57. Then shall the last enemy, death, be conquered.
Then shall we no more weep, mourn, or lament; all torment, pain
and affliction shall then have passed, like a vapor, that
endures for a little time. Then we shall no more be tormented
or tempted, apprehended or hunted; but we shall rest from our
heavy labor, and help keep the eternal day of rest, with many
thousand saints under the altar, who are chosen out of every
kindred and nation, who have also sealed the Word of God with
their blood, and have passed through the world through many
great tribulations, and not loved their lives above their
Creator unto the death. Rev. 14:13; 7:14; 12:11.</p>

<p>Behold my dear brother Maerten Janss, what will it matter
then, whether we have lived in great luxury and pleasure, or
whether we have been persecuted, imprisoned, tormented,
tortured, burnt or beheaded, yes, what will it matter when it
is all over? For then we shall all follow the Lamb slain from
the foundation of the world, with a great multitude of saints,
arrayed in fine linen clean and white, palms in our hands, and
crowns upon our heads. Oh, what a glorious work will that be
for him that will be able to endure here unto the end! Hence,
my dear brother, I say with tears, though I write it to you,
let us keep good courage; for in the world, says Christ, ye
shall have tribulation, "But be of good cheer; I have overcome
the world." John 16:33. So doing let us hold fast the promise,
without wavering; for he is faithful that promised (Hebrews
10:23); though they say that we have the devil of pride in us,
and that he is too firmly seated in us. But it will be found
otherwise, when that comes what shall come; there is no doubt
about it. Though we are here deprived of our right, when the
judge of judges shall judge, we shall get it back, I have no
doubt at all. Herewith I will commend you to the Lord, and to
the rich Word of His grace, who is able to keep you unto the
end. Amen.</p>

<p>Know, Maerten Janss, that the tormentors have been with me
all the week, except one day, and I daily expect their return.
Adrian Corneliss was also here this week, with the chaplain.
And on Saturday the chaplain was here, with a steersman from
Egmont, named Jacob Meulenaer, who wanted to prove to me, that
however bad a man was, he .might teach the Word of God aright,
and save men; yea, though it were the devil, he might teach men
the Word of God aright. He took off his cap, and sat there as
though he was about to deliver an exhortation, and made a
speech almost a quarter of an hour long, commencing at the very
beginning. I could not refrain from laughing, whenever I looked
at him, for I thought that his head was out of order. When he
had finished, all three of us fell in a dispute; yet I did not
intend to make many words, but it is difficult for a man to
keep silence.Hence when they perceived that I would not listen
to them they assailed me very hard. The steersman said, "Had I
been officer, you would not have lain here so long; he would
have made short work with me." He said to the priest, "The lords
must put this man to death secretly; he [the devil] was so
firmly seated in me," he said,"that he could not come out;" and
many other ugly words he said. I said, "The plainer you make it
the better I understand it." And the chaplain and I had many
hard words, and he was greatly incensed. I said that I did not
desire him so any more. He said that he marveled with Paul,
that I had so soon suffered myself to be led to another gospel,
when yet there was no other. I said, "What other gospel have I
accepted?" He said, "That I had not been willing to have my
children baptized.""Indeed," said I,"you have not a single
letter of Scripture that they must be baptized." Observe, dear
brother, his view, "If Paul had ordained it as a command and
custom to baptize infants, and we rejected the same, we had
accepted another gospel." I also had some words with the
steersman; what he said was neither rhyme nor reason, and he
was very abusive to me. I said, "Calling names breaks no bones;
one can do it seated as well, and I offered him a chair." He
said that he knew more in one finger, than I in my whole body;
and many other things he said. Farewell, and acquit yourself
valiantly; I hope to do the same. And let us remember each
other in our prayers. Take this my simple letter in good part,
for it has been written out of love; and excuse me for having
waited so long before writing, since I have many visitors, not
friends, however, since no one is allowed to come to me except
my father. Write me again, how it is with you, for I hear
nothing but good of you, God be praised.</p>

<p>Written, A. D. 1572, in my bonds, by me,</p>

<p class="c5">JAN HENDRICKSS</p>

<h2>ANOTHER LETTER FROM JAN HENDRICKSS TO<br />
POUWELS AND AECHTGEN, HIS BROTHER AND<br />
SISTER, FOR AN ADMONITION TO THEM,<br />
AND FINALLY FOR A FAREWELL</h2> 

<p>The God of all grace, who has called us from the power of
darkness into His eternal kingdom, through Jesus Christ our
Lord, grant you according to the riches of His glory, to be
strengthened with power by His Spirit in the inner man; that
Christ may dwell in your hearts by faith; that ye, being rooted
and grounded in love, may be able to comprehend with all saints
what is the breadth, and length, and depth, and height; and to
know the love of Christ, which passeth knowledge, that ye might
be filled with all the fullness of God. Col. 1:13; Eph.
3:16-19. This, I Jan Hendrickss, a poor prisoner for the word
of the Lord, at Delft, wish Pouwels H. and Aechtgen H., for an
affectionate salutation in the Lord. Amen.</p>

<p>Further, after all proper salutation to you, my beloved
brother Pouwels Hendrickss, and Aacht-</p>

</div><div id="944"> 

<p>gen Hendrickss, daughter, whom I love much according to the
flesh, and also after the spirit, I inform you, that I am still
valiant and of good cheer in the Lord, as I hope that this is
also the case with you. And as, according to human calculation,
my departure, or time is near at hand, to put off my
tabernacle, I cannot forbear, but must exhort you briefly, out
of pure, faithful, brotherly love, to strive firmly,
steadfastly and constantly in the faith once delivered to the
saints, that you may through this faith receive God's promises,
so that we may meet together under the altar, with the great
number robed in white, who are chosen and redeemed by the blood
of the Lamb out of every kindred and nation under heaven, and
have passed through the world through great tribulation, being
burnt, pursued, beheaded, and the like; therefore are they
before the throne of God, and serve Him day and night in His
presence. Rev. 7:14, 15.</p>

<p>See, dear brother, all these had to drink of this bitter
cup, before they attained their present state; and they all had
to walk this narrow, strait, slippery, and perilous way, and
did not love their lives unto the death, and had to leave
everything behind for the name of the Lord, whether it be
lands, sand, house, home, wife, and children, before they
reached this exceedingly glorious state. Yea, the Son of God
Himself entered into His Father's kingdom through great
affliction being apprehended, mocked, scourged, crucified, and
put to death, so that he said, "I am a worm, and no man." Psalm
22:6. Hence let us take these for an example and pattern, lest
we become slothful, drowsy, or faint on the way, and thus be
taken captive by the wiles and snares of Satan, for a man that
is asleep is easily caught. But be fervent in spirit, and seek
to be the first in every good work, and not the least; and
beware of the arrows of the devil, which he shoots in darkness;
and pray to God day and night, for it is needful to pray
always, lest we fall into temptation, for he that seeks to
murder our soul neither sleeps nor slumbers, and is constantly
walking about us as a roaring lion. And beware of pride, of
spiritual as well as other pride, for it is the nature of man
to be rather high minded. Let all envy and hatred, railing and
slandering, and all craftiness and malice be far from you,
together with all murmuring of the heart. Covetousness or
rapacity, ambition and selfishness, let these not be found with
you, but put on the Lord Jesus Christ, and follow His example
in everything, as well as you can. Have brotherly love, and
endeavor to keep the unity of the Spirit in the bond of peace.
Be patient in all tribulation and affliction that come upon
you, and the God of peace will be with you; for we have great
need of patience, as I have proved. For Sirach says, "Woe to him
that has lost patience," and well may he say so.</p>

<p>In short, conduct yourselves so according to your weakness,
that no one may justly have much to complain of you. And serve
the Lord with all your heart and purpose; incline your thoughts
toGod, and let your eyes ever be upon Him, even as the eyes-of
the servant are upon his master, and the eyes of a maiden upon
her mistress. And work out your salvation with fear and
trembling; moreover, think not that you always fall too short,
not doing enough. And do not walk carelessly in the ways of the
Lord, but pass the time -of your sojourning here in fear, for
the heedless and careless will soon have squandered all their
substance; but exercise great care for the poor soul which has
been redeemed with a great price, and will live forever, either
in heaven or in hell. Fight valiantly against Satan with his
manifold lusts and desires and false insinuations, and trample
his head in pieces under your feet, with earnest supplication
and prayer to God, with diligence and earnestness, for Satan
comes down with great wrath, knowing that his time is brief.
Rev. 12:17. Likewise always remember God's severe judgment, and
great day that shall come upon all the ungodly. For when we
bear it well in mind, we can the better guard against it,
because it will be most terrible; even as Sirach says, "My son,
remember your end, and you will never sin," for according to
the Scriptures marvelous things indeed will take place when the
great day of the Lord shall come; for the Lord Himself shall
descend from heaven with a shout, with the voice of the
archangel, and with the trump of God: and the dead in Christ
shall rise first: then we which are alive and remain shall be
caught up together with them in the clouds, to meet the Lord in
the air: and so shall we ever be with the Lord. I Thess. 4:16,
17. And the sea shall give up her dead; no one shall then
remain hid that shall not rise again: but everyone shall
receive in his body according to that he hath done, whether it
be good or bad. Rev. 20:13; II Cor. 5:10. Although our body is
now placed to the stake, for food for the birds and beasts
(Psalm 79:2), it shall therefore not remain lost, but the Lord
shall raise it up again in due time, and make it like unto the
image of His Son, and then shall we, through His grace, shine
forth as the sun in the kingdom of their Father, whereas the
part and lot of all the ungodly shall be in the lake which
burneth with fire and brimstone. Phil.. 3:21; Matt. 13:43; Rev.
21:8.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear brethren and sisters, faint not at my
tribulation which I now suffer, but let it be your glory. Eph.
3:13. For, who art thou, says the Lord by the prophet, that
thou shouldst be afraid of man that shall die, and of the son
of man which shall be made as grass? Isa. 51:12. Christ
likewise says, "I say unto you my friends, Be not afraid of them
that kill the body, and after that have no more that they can
do. But I will forewarn you whom ye shall fear: Fear him, which
after he hath killed hath power to cast into hell; yea, I say
unto you, Fear him." Luke 12:4, 5. For, my dear brethren and
sisters, it is too wonderful how the Lord can work with His
own, which I well experienced when I was tortured; for they
first drew me up by the pulley, and when I was suspended,
they</p>

</div><div id="945"> 

<p>scourged me; and when I would betray no one, they hung a
weight to my feet; but as soon as I came upstairs again, I had
but little pain, yea, the next day my limbs were no worse than
if I had helped catch six or seven loads of herring. Hence keep
good courage, and follow me; I hope now to go betore you, and
to wait for you under the altar of the Lord, with the marked
dead of the Lord, who are already slain for the name of their
God, and lie and wait for their fellow brethren, that shall be
killed yet for the testimony of the Lord, until the time that
the number is fulfilled. Oh, that we might meet one another
therel what great joy it would be for me, as I hope and have
this confidence concerning you, that we shall yet go in and out
there as calves of the stall, and help keep the eternal
Sabbath; then we shall rest from all our great trouble, misery
and torment that have been inflicted upon us, and from the
heavy labor which we have done. To this end make you meet the
great Shepherd of the sheep, who brought us from the dead
through the blood of the everlasting testament. Amen. Hebrews
13:20. For I love your souls with all my heart, and would fain,
that I might take you all before me. Herewith I will commend
you to God, and to the rich Word of His grace; may He keep you
unto the end. Amen.</p>

<p>Dear brother and sister, my heart's great desire of you is,
that you have an eye upon our brothers Cornelis H. and Jacob
H., and our sister Leentgen H., and direct them in the fear of
God as much as you can. But above all, have your eye upon my
children, and show them and my wife as much love as you can;
for my glass is almost run out, my watch is nearly over; day
will soon break, for I have already seen the morning star in
the sky. Herewith farewell; I greet Adrian H. and his wife and
all dear friends much; bid my friends many adieus. Dear brother
and sister, take my letter in good part; though I am somewhat
solemn in my letters, it is because I love your souls so much.
Written on the 23d of January 1572. Adieu for a little while,
my dear brethren and sisters, till we meet again; acquit
yourselves valiantly, this I pray you. By me,</p>

<p class="c5">JAN HENDRICKSS</p>

<br />

<h1>SANDER WOUTERSS, OF BAMMEL AND EVERT HENDRICKS, OF WARENDORP, BOTH BURNT ALIVE 
FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST AT 
AMSTERDAM, ON THE 3D OF SEPTEMBER, A. D. 1575</h1> 

<p>The misery of the beloved children of God had not come to an
end yet at this time, since the words spoken by the Lord, "They
shall put you out of the synagogues; yea, the time cometh, that
whosoever killeth you will think that he doeth God service,"
were still being fulfilled, which among many other instances,
also appeared in the year 1572, on the third day of September,
at Amsterdam, in the case of two pious and valiant champions of
Jesus Christ, named Sander Wouterss, of Bommel andEvert
Hendricks of Warendorp, both of whom at that time, voluntarily
exchanged their life for death, and surrendered it to the Lord
as a burnt sacrifice, the Romanistic rulers effecting this
through their malice, with fiery flames in the place of
execution in front of the city hall at Amsterdam.</p>

<p>But between those who did this, and the others who suffered
it, there shall hereafter be a great difference, when there
shall be said to those who suffered it, "Come, ye blessed of my
Father, inherit the kingdom prepared for you from the
foundation of the world," but to those who did it (if they have
not sincerely been converted from this wickedness);"Depart, ye
cursed, into everlasting fire, prepared for the devil and his
angels." Matt. 25. Oh, what an exceeding great difterencel our
reason is utterly powerless to grasp this, our mortal and frail
tongue cannot express it.</p>

<p>NOTE.-The sentence of death of the aforementioned two
persons was sent us from the original book of criminal
sentences of said city, through the instrumentality of the
clerk of the court there</p>

<p>hence we will add the same here, just as it reads; in it may
be seen how perfidiously the papistic rulers of that time
misinterpreted the good confession of the pious witnesses of
Jesus Christ, and how dreadfully and horribly they proceeded
against and dealt with them.</p>

<h2>SENTENCE OF DEATH OF SANDER WOUTERSS OF<br />
BOMMEL AND EVERT HENDRICKS OF<br />
WARENDORP</h2> 

<p>Whereas it has appeared to my lords of the court that Sander
Wouterss of Bommel and Evert Hendrick of Warendorp, both
tailors and inhabitants of this city, prisoners at present,
unmindful of the obedience which they owed to our mother, the
holy church, and to his royal majesty, as their natural lord
and prince, and rejecting the ordinances of the holy church,
have for many years past not been to confession, nor to the
holy, worthy sacrament, and have further dared repeatedly to
attend the assembly of the reprobated sect of the Mennonists,
or Anabaptists, and also to permit preaching after the manner
of the aforesaid sect to be done in their houses; and the
afore-mentioned Sander Wouterss, twelve years ago, and the
aforesaid Evert Hendricks, seven years ago, renouncing and
forsaking the baptism received by them in their infancy from
the holy church, have also suffered themselves to be
rebaptized, and afterwards repeatedly received, the breaking of
the bread, according to the manner of the afore-mentioned sect;
and though they have been repeatedly urged and admonished, by
divers spiritual persons, to forsake the aforementioned sect,
and to return to our mother, the holy church, they nevertheless
refuse to do the same, persisting in their stubbornness and
obstinacy, disturbing by said sect the common peace and welfare
of the land,* according to the import of the</p>

<p class="c8">* Thus spake also the enemies of the prophet
Amos, saying: Amos bath conspired [against thee in the midst of
the house of</p>

</div><div id="946"> 

<p>decrees of his majesty existing in regard to this, which
crimes, for an example unto others, ought not to go unpunished;
therefore, my lords of the court having heard the demand of my
lord the bailiff, and having seen the voluntary confession of
the prisoners, and having had regard to their stubbornness and
obstinacy, have condemned, and do condemn by these presents,
said prisoners, and each of them severally, to be executed with
fire, according to the decrees of his majesty, and declare all
their property confiscated for the benefit of his majesty
aforesaid. Done in court, this 3d of September 1572, by all the
judges, and with the advice of all the burgomasters, in
presence of me the secretary.</p>

<p class="c5">Signed, W. PIETERSS.</p>

<p>Thus extracted from the book of criminal sentences of the
city of Amsterdam, preserved in the archives of that city.</p>

<p class="c5">N. N.</p>

<h2>HANS KNEVEL, A. D. 1572</h2> 

<p>As is known to many, the world has become so corrupted
through the false teachings of antichrist, and iniquity has,
according to the prediction of Christ (Matt. 24:12), so gained
the ascendancy, that the princes and kings of the earth have
become utterly perverted, through her seductive wine of
fornication (Rev. 17:2; 18:3) , from their native reasonable
nature, who usually are wont to show some love and mercy to
their own friends and kindred, and also to those who love and
do good to them. This reasonableness seems to have almost
ceased in many princes and rulers of this world, so that in
place of their native reasonableness they are now like
irrational beasts, who by nature are born for taking and
slaying. II Pet. 2:12; Jude 1:10. This, among many other
instances, appeared also, about the year 1572, in the city of
Antwerp, where they apprehended a pious follower of Christ, by
the name of Hans Knevel. He was a young single man and a
clothshearer by trade. The circumstances that led to his
imprisonment were as follows: It happened that one of his chief
friends became known to the margrave and to some one of his
servants, whereupon they laid plans to apprehend him. This plot
was made known to Hans Knevel, in his shop where he worked. He
therefore very earnestly warned his friend with regard to it,
and advised him to go away from there, saying that he would go
with him. Thus they went together and took up residence at
Hamburg, where, after residing for a time, Hans Knevel went
back to Antwerp again, there seeking to make a living by
selling wool. Hence, about ten o'clock, the margrave with his
servants came into the inn where he lodged and asked him, "Is
not your name Hans Knevel?" He answered, "Yes," They said, "You
are an Anabaptist; you must go with us." And he was also able
to tell him, that he had gone from there to Hamburg with his
special friend Steven</p>

<p>[Israel:] the land is not able to bear all his words. Amos
7:10. And thus it was also said of Christ, "He perverts the
nation." Luke 23:2. Janss Dilburgh. And thus he was confined in
a dark dungeon, and on the following Monday brought before the
lords, the margrave, bailiff, two judges, and the clerk of the
criminal court. Now when this friend of God, Hans Knevel, out
of modesty hesitated to sit down immediately, the bailiff
said, "Sit down and do what you are told; you obey your people,
you must also obey us." When he asked him what he held
concerning their infant baptism, Hans answered that he had read
nothing of infant baptism in the New Testament, hence he could
hold nothing concerning it. <i>Ques.</i> "Were you baptized upon
your faith?" <i>Ans.</i> "Yes." <i>Ques.</i> "How long ago?" He
told them, and that it took place between Chronenburgh and the
Oever. This they wrote down as he understood.
<i>Ques.</i> "Where have you attended preaching, and whom have
you seen there?" He named to them several persons, and some who
had already been offered up. Thereupon they said, "You name to
us persons that are out of the country, and such as have been
burned; we want to know those who live in this place, and who
are your teachers, ministers, and informants." And they said
such people as he, the prisoner, was, had no liberty 'anywhere,
and had to roam about everywhere. Hans replied that also Christ
Himself had no liberty anywhere. This they took ill, that he
the prisoner sought to compare himself to Christ. The margrave
said, "At Hamburg you people have no liberty either." Hans
replied, "There, however, they deprive no one of property and
life, as is done here. <i>Margrave.</i> "What do they do there
then." <i>Hans.</i> "They are sent out of the city."
<i>Margrave.</i> "Then they have to go intd another again."
<i>Hans.</i> "Yes, but they shall not have gone over all the
cities of Israel, till their redemption shall be at the door."
Matt. 10:23. At this they laughed. <i>Margrave.</i> "We will
send you learned men, and if you will suffer yourself to be
instructed, mercy shall be shown you." <i>Hans.</i> "Yes, you
will show me such mercy that I shall have my head cut off."
<i>Margrave.</i> "No, but we should release <i>you."
Hans.</i> "Though it were as you say, you would love my body,
but hate my <i>soul." Margrave.</i> "No, but I love your body,
and still much more your soul, since you are young yet, and
have been brought to it innocently; but if you will not hear;
you shall fare like the rest."</p>

<p>Hans said that he was well satisfied, and thus they parted.
Afterwards these prisoners of the Lord were for three
consecutive days brought before a priest, who endeavored with
all his might to make them believe his false doctrine, telling
them many things concerning their old custom, which this friend
of God did not deem worthy to write to his friends. The priest
especially made many words over Rom. 13, by which he wanted to
justify the murdering and slaying perpetrated by the Romish
church, saying that the magistracy did not bear the sword in
vain, and that it must therefore be obeyed. Hans replied that
he was willing to obey the magistracy in custom, taxes and the
like; but that the</p>

</div><div id="947"> 

<p>priest ought to be ashamed, that he sought to justify their
wicked murdering and burning even by the Scriptures; asking him
where Christ and His apostles had ever done this. He further
asked the priest why he had come to him. The priest answered, ""
To win your soul." Hans Knevel told him, if he sought to win
souls, to go around in the city, in the brothels, the tippling
houses, tennis courts, and to those who shed so much innocent
blood, and to seek to win their souls. His own soul Christ had
already won. Thus this prisoner disputed five different times
with the priest. Afterwards he was put upon the rack several
times; but the Lord his God; in whose grace he trusted,
faithfully succored him according to His promise. When he again
appeared before the lords, he was severely upbraided, why he
refused to hear the learned men whom they had sent. Hans
replied"Your learned men wanted to make me believe in infant
baptism, of which the Scriptures no where speak"; and he
offered to show the lords the Scriptures relating to the true
Christian baptism-,' but the lords did not wish to hear it,
claiming not to understand the matter. Hans asked how they then
dared judge such an important matter, involving body and soul, and which they, according to their own
saying, did not understand.</p>

<p>Having been severely confined for about nine days in the
Emperor's Chair, he was again summoned before the margrave, and
the clerk of the criminal court. The margrave told him that he
had received a letter from the Duke, with the import that the
prisoner must be examined still further or more rigorously.
Hans replied that he could not give them any further
information. Hence he had to go upon the rack again. When they
could obtain nothing else from him, they released him from, the
rack. Hans said, "How can you torment us thus, when no one
complains of us, that we have injured any one?" The margrave
said, "You will not obey the authorities." Hans replied, "We will gladly obey the authorities in all taxes, customs
and excises; yea, we should be sorry, if we should withhold
from the authorities one stiver of what is their due." They
then compared him to the Munsterites. Hans said that his faith
was as different from the Munsterite sect, as heaven is from
the earth. And after they had finished tormenting, tempting and
otherwise maltreating him according to their pleasure, and he
the prisoner,</p>

<p style="font-style: normal"><br /></p>

</div><div id="948"> 

<p>was in no wise to be moved, since he was firmly built upon
the cournerstone Christ Jesus, he was burned at the stake, in
the marketplace at Antwerp, about the year 1572, confirming the
faith of the truth with his death and blood, for an instructive
and perpetual example to all true Christians; for he has fought
the fight, finished his course, obtained the crown of eternal
glory through the grace of God, and now rests with all his
fellow combatants that have lawfully striven (II Tim. 2:5 ),
under the altar of Christ Jesus.</p>

<p>This account we have chiefly taken from Hans Knevel's own
letter, which he wrote at Antwerp, from prison, to his dear
brother Steven Janss Dilburgh and his wife Leentjen at Hamburg;
in which he communicates at length the firm foundation of his
faith and living hope in God's grace and blessed promises,
which we, to avoid prolixity, have omitted, even as we have
also done with a large number of similar writings.</p>

<p>Persecuted, but not forsaken. II Cor. 4:9.</p>

<br />

<h1>MATTHEUS BERNAERTS, CALLED MATTHEUS VAN LINCKEN, ADRIAEN ROGIERS, MAERTEN VAN 
DER STRATEN, AND DINGENTGEN OF 
HONSCHOTEN, A. D. 1572</h1> 

<p>In the year 1572, the 4th of December, there were burned at
Ghent in Flanders, in the Friday Market, for the testimony of
Jesus, with balls in their mouths, a God-fearing, pious
brother, named Mattheus Bernaerts, called Mattheus van Lineken,
born at Meenen in Flanders, forty years old, in his time a
minister of the church of God, in the Word of the holy Gospel,
and also in the deaconship, to provide for poor needy members
of Christ in temporal necessities; and a young maiden, named
Dingentgen of Honschoten. These two, together with Maerten van
der Straten, born at Kortrijck in Flanders, and Adriaen
Rogiers, born at Bommel in Guelderland (who are separately
mentioned in this book), four in all, were together burned in
the same fire, with balls in their mouths, for the true,
indubitable truth, and testified to and confirmed the true
faith with their death and blood in great constancy. They thus
fought a good fight against the princes and rulers of darkness,
the devil and his adherents, finished their course, kept the
faith, and are expecting now to receive, through grace, the
crown of eternal glory from the hand of the Lord.</p>

<h2>A TESTAMENT WRITTEN BY MATTHEUS BERNAERTS,<br />
CALLED VAN LINCKEN, IMPRISONED IN GHENT,<br />
TO HIS CHILDREN, JANNEKEN, JOOSKEN<br />
AND MIJNTKEN</h2> 

<p class="c3">The salutation.</p>

<p>God the heavenly Father, Creator of heaven and earth, and
the waters, and all that therein is; who dwells in the light
which no man can approach unto; whom no man hath seen, nor can
see (I Tim.6:1); the same .eternal, only, Almighty God, grant
you, my dear children, through Christ Jesus His only Son, and
the power of the Holy Ghost, till your full age, grace and
mercy, wisdom and understanding, that your senses may become
exercised to discern both good and evil (Heb. 5:14), so that
you may from your youth, through the fear of God, learn to shun
sin, and to avoid all evil and wickedness, and thus grow up in
the knowledge of God that you may inherit salvation and eternal
glory, so that I may find you in life eternal. This I, Mattheus
Bernaerts, your father, wish you, my dear children, Janneken,
Joosken, and Mijntken, from the depth of my heart, that this
may be done. Amen.</p>

<p>I, Mattheus Bernaerts, or Mattheus van Lincken, your father,
am now, for the Word of God, confined in prison at Ghent.
Hence, my dear children, my first wish is, that, when you are
come to years of understanding, you diligently inquire why it
came that your father had to suffer; and search also ardently
in the holy Scriptures, and you will by the grace of God
readily perceive that it is not for any evil doing or heresy
that I have to suffer, as I and my fellow brethren that have
obtained like faith with me, have been accused by the false
prophets; but we are reproached, because we firmly hope in the
living God, who is the Saviour of all men, specially of those
that believe. I Tim. 4:10. In the living God, I say, who so
loved the world, that He gave His only begotten Son, that
whosoever believeth in Him should not perish, but have
everlasting life. John 3:16. We confess that the same only Son
of the Father has existed from everlasting to everlasting. For
He is Alpha and Omega, the beginning and the end, the first and
the last, by whom all things were created, and by whom we also
have reconciliation, even the forgiveness of sins. Revelation
1:8, 17; Col. 1:16, 14. For when we were yet ungodly, Christ
died for us, and we were reconciled by the death of the Son of
God when we were yet enemies through the knowledge of evil
works, and now are we reconciled by the body of His flesh
through death, for the blood of Jesus Christ His Son cleanseth
us from all our sins. Romans 5:8; I John 1:7. He is also the
innocent, spotless Lamb, that took Adam's sin upon Himself, who
did no sin, neither was guile found in His mouth and who of
God is made unto us wisdom, and righteousness, and
sanctification, and redemption. I Pet. 2:22; I Cor. 1:30.</p>

<p>In short, I believe and confess with many saints of God,
that Christ is the Son of the living God, even as Peter
confessed Him, with many apostles, Nathanael, Martha, the
thief, the angel Gabriel, the Father from high heaven, and many
Christian witnesses. This only Son of God revealed and made
known to us the will of the Father after He arose from the
dead. He gave His apostles a command, saying, "All power is
given unto me in heaven and in earth. Go ye therefore, and
teach all nations, baptizing them in the name of the Father,
and of</p>

</div><div id="949"> 

<p>the Son, and of the Holy Ghost: teaching them to observe all
things whatsoever I have commanded you." Matt. 28:18-20. Mark
writes, "Go ye into all the world, and preach the Gospel to
every creature. He that believeth and is baptized shall be
saved; but he that believeth not shall be damned." Mark 16:15,
16. But man must then first become converted and repent, for
Christ caused repentance to be preached in His name, for the
remission of sins, and to Christ give all the prophets witness,
that through His name, whosoever believeth in Him shall receive
remission of sins. Acts 2:38; 10:43. And the apostles as
faithful servants followed the command of Christ, as we read in
Acts, where Peter taught the people of Jerusalem,
saying, "Repent, and be baptized every one of you in the name of
Jesus Christ for the remission of sins, and ye shall receive
the gift of the Holy Ghost, and they that gladly received his
word were baptized." Acts 2:38, 41. Likewise we also find
concerning the eunuch from Ethiopia, that he was baptized by
Philip upon the confession of his faith. V. 37, 38. Philip also
baptized both men and women, when he had preached to them the
things concerning the kingdom of God. V. 12. Peter also
commanded to baptize Cornelius and his household, when he and
all his household, by faith, had received the Holy Ghost.
10:47, 48. The jailer and his household also were baptized,
when they had come to believe in the Lord Jesus. 16:33. Thus
the apostles baptized only believers, after they had first
taught them to repent, to die unto sin, and to be buried by
baptism, to rise again in newness of life. Rom. 6:4. Thus
baptism is a burial of sin, a washing of regeneration, the like
figure whereunto even baptism, says Peter, doth also now save
us, not the putting away of the filth of the flesh, but the
answer of a good conscience toward God. I Pet. 3:21. For by
baptism it is indicated to believers, that they, through
Christ, are inwardly baptized with the Holy Ghost and with
fire, concerning which we have many testimonies in the
Scriptures, and thus enter into a covenant with the Most High,
who assures them by His Holy Spirit, of the grace and merits of
our Lord Jesus Christ that He is their God, and that they are
His children.</p>

<p>This in brief is our belief respecting baptism, and we,
moreover, renounce everything that has been instituted by men,
contrary to it.</p>

<p>We further have from the Word of God the Supper, or breaking
of bread, which the Lord Himself instituted, and commanded His
apostles, for a remembrance of His sufferings and death, as
Paul writes, "The Lord Jesus, the same night in which he was
betrayed, took bread: and when he had given thanks, he brake
it, and said, Take, eat; this is my body, which is broken for
you: this do in remembrance of me. After the same manner also
he took the cup, when he had supped, saying, This cup is the
New Testament in my blood: this do ye, as oft as ye drink it,
in remembrance of me. For asoften as ye eat this bread, and
drink this cup, ye do shew the Lord's death till he come.
Wherefore whosoever shall eat this bread, and drink this cup of
the Lord, unworthily, shall be guilty of the body and blood of
the Lord. But let a man examine himself, and so let him eat of
that bread, and drink of that cup. For he that eateth and
drinketh unworthily, eateth and drinketh damnation to himself,
not discerning the Lord's body." I Cor. 11: 23-29. Thus did
Christ Jesus institute the Supper with bread and wine, to be
used in the Christian assembly, in the name of the Lord, for a
token of brotherly love and unity, for a sign that we, through
His merits, by faith in His holy name, have become partakers of
Christ, the true bread from heaven, as Paul declares, "The cup
of blessing which we bless, is it not the communion of the
blood of Christ? The bread which we break, is it not the
communion of the body of Christ? For we being many are one
bread, and one body: for we are all partakers of that one
bread." I Cor. 10:16, 17. But they that are meet for this bread
must have died unto sin, and have buried it [sin] by baptism,
and have risen again with Christ in a godly Christian life;
they must have become new creatures in Christ, and been
cleansed in His blood; they must be saved by the washing of
water by the Word, be flesh of Christ's flesh, and bone of His
bones; they must be partakers of the divine nature, and further
flee all the perishing lusts of this world; they must also by
one Spirit be baptized into one body, and have been made to
drink into one Spirit. II Cor. 5:17; Ephesians 5:26; I Cor.
12:13. This Supper is wholly perverted by the world, for they
hold their supper with harlots and rogues, with drunkards,
adulterers, idolaters, liars, thieves, murderers, railers, and
sorcerers, of whom it is written, that such shall not inherit
the kingdom of God, for their part shall be in the fiery lake
which shall burn with fire and brimstone, which is the second
death. Gal. 5:21; Rev. 21:8. They also believe that in eating
the bread and drinking the cup they eat the real body of
Christ, and drink His real blood, whereas Christ says to the
Jews, when they also understood it carnally, even as these do
still understand it, that flesh and blood did profit nothing;
it is the Spirit that quickeneth: the words that I speak unto
you, they are spirit, and they are life. John 6:63. We also
find in many places, that Christ sat down on the right hand of
His Father in heaven, and that He shall possess heaven, until
the time that there will be fulfilled what God has spoken by
the mouth of His prophets. Acts 3:21. And because I, my dear
children, have from the heart accepted and believed these three
articles, from the Word of God, as from the mouth of the Lord
by the Holy Ghost, and have, according to my weak ability,
avoided and shunned evil, and all that is contrary thereunto,
as many different abominations, idolatry, infant baptism, the
idolatrous, perverted supper, auricular confession, and divers
other abominations; therefore I must suffer and die.</p>

</div><div id="950"> 

<p>But it has been so from the beginning of the world, that the
righteous have had to suffer much, as Christ says, "They shall
put you out of the synagogues: yea, the time cometh, that
whosoever killeth you will think that he doeth God service. And
these things will they do unto you, because they have not known
the Father, nor me" (John 16</p>

<p>2, 3); for"had they known him, they would not have crucified
the Lord of glory." I Corinthians 2:8. And Christ says, "If ye
were of the world, the world would love his own; but because ye
are not of the world, but I have chosen you out of the world,
therefore the world hateth you." John 15:19.</p>

<p>Thus the children of God are called and chosen from this
dark, wicked world to the light Jesus Christ, that their works,
which are done in God, may reprove the world and bring to light
its wickedness; therefore they are enraged against them, after
the manner of Cain. Because Abel's sacrifice was acceptable
before the Lord, therefore he was slain by Cain; for that which
is pure and clear cannot come forth; he that departeth from
evil, and doeth good, is every one's prey. Isa. 59:14, 15. And
all that will live godly in Christ Jesus must suffer
persecution. II Tim. 3:12. The angel said to Tobit, "Because
thou wast pleasing to God, it had to be thus; thou couldest not
remain without temptation, that thou mightest be tried." Tobit
12:13."The disciple is not above his master, nor the servant
above his lord. It is enough for the disciple that he be as his
master, and the servant as his lord. If they have called the
master of the house Beelzebub; how much more shall they call
them of his household? If they have persecuted me, they will
also persecute you; if they have kept my saying, they will keep
yours also." Matt. 10:24, 25; John 15:20. My dear little
children, what I, your father, must now suffer for, will not be
to your disgrace, for it is for the name of the Lord Jesus
Christ. Hence be not ashamed of it, for we cannot die a more
glorious death for the Lord, than for the Word of God. Peter
and John departed joyfully from the presence of the council,
when they had been scourged, because they were counted worthy
to suffer shame for the name of Jesus. Acts 5:41. And the same
apostle says, "If ye be reproached for the name of Christ, happy
are ye; for the Spirit of glory and of God resteth upon you: on
their part he is evil spoken of, but on your part he is
glorified." I Pet. 4:14.</p>

<p>It is further my wish, my dear children, that you keep
yourselves from the evil works of this world, the number of
which is very great, that you be not condemned with it; for the
world and all the lust thereof shall pass away, but he that
doeth the will of God abideth forever, yea, the Lord will keep
him as the apple of His eye, and his good works as a signet. I
Cor. 11:32; Sir. 17:22. Therefore strive from your youth for
that which is best, submit your shoulders to the truth, flee
all youthful lusts, and endeavor to take up the yoke of the
Lord, namely,the doctrine of Jesus Christ, now in your youthful
days, even until old age, yea, unto the end of your life, then
a wise and perfect man will be beheld in you. Diligently search
the holy Scriptures, that you may thereby go on perfect in the
divine life, from which the world is alienated; and let the
Word of Christ be planted in you, that it may dwell in you
richly in all wisdom. Col. 3:16. Remember always God's
commandment, and continually His Word, which shall make your
heart perfect, and give you wisdom, as you desire; for the Word
of the Most High is the fountain of wisdom, and her entrance
are the everlasting commandments. Sirach 1:5. Through the Word
of God you receive godly senses that are exercised to discern
both good and evil, for the holy Scriptures testify of God's
goodness, and makes the ignorant (that desire it) wise to fear
God, and to flee all wickedness, and do good. For he that fears
God will do good. The fear of God is the beginning of wisdom,
and to depart from evil is understanding. Job 28:28. The fear
of the Lord is a fountain of wisdom, to depart from the snares
of eternal death. Prov. 14:27. And the wages of sin is death.
Rom. 6:23. Hence, my dear children, shun the cause which leads
to death, that is sin, which is seen very much in those that
arle carnal, for the world lieth in wickedness, for sin is very
lightly esteemed by them, yet the teeth thereof are as the
teeth of a lion, slaying the souls of men, for all sin and
iniquity is as a twoedged sword, the wounds whereof can not be
healed. I John 5:19; Sir. 21:2, 3. O my dear children, keep
your souls with the greatest diligence, so that you also speak
no iniquity with your mouth; and beware of lying, for man, says
Christ, shall have to give account of every idle word which he
shall have idly spoken. Matt. 12:36. Hence Paul says, "Put away
lying, and speak truth with one another." Eph. 4:25. For idle
words shall not go free, and the mouth that lieth slayeth the
soul; and liars have no part in the kingdom of God, but their
part shall be in the lake which burneth with fire and
brimstone. Wisd. 1:11; Rev. 21:8.</p>

<p>Dear children, be faithful wherever you live, or wherever
you are be good and faithful to all men; and beware of
stealing, for thieves have no place in the kingdom of God, for
it is an abominable, great sin; hence let neither your eye nor
your heart covet ought of that which is not yours, for a thief
is nowhere liked, for wherever he goes he and his hands are
watched.</p>

<p>Thus, my dear children, conduct yourselves honestly toward
everyone, and whatever you hear in the house that should be
kept secret, do not proclaim in the streets, or to everyone
from house to house, but observe secrecy and attend to your
work, and be not negligent through idleness, for idleness makes
thieves of boys, and harlots of girls, which is frequently seen
to happen, that daughters reach the brothel, and sons the
gallows; this often comes from the fact that they are
lickerish, and will not work. Hence conduct yourselves well
with</p>

</div><div id="951"> 

<p>those with whom you are, and obey them, even as you ought to
obey your father, and be not stubborn and obstinate, but obey
them willingly from the heart, and treat them and all men
courteously and kindly; and beware of backbiting, for this too
is a great sin, a thief is a shameful thing, but a backbiter is
more shameful still, for the backbiter reveals what he secretly
knows. Sir. 5:14. Hence keep your tongue from evil, and your
lips from speaking guile. Eschew evil, and do good: seek peace,
and ensue it; for the eyes of the Lord are over the righteous,
and His ears are open unto their prayers: but the face of the
Lord is against them that do evil. Ps. 34:13; I Pet. 3:10-12.
Therefore put off now all envy and backbiting (I Pet. 2:1), and
do not envy one another, nor any one, for envy destroys all
friendship, and separates good friends, and through envy Cain
slew his brother Abel. Out of envy the sons of Jacob cast their
brother Joseph into the pit, and sold him.</p>

<p>O my dear children, keep constantly in the house, and do not
go in the street much, when you have nothing to do there; for
there one learns nothing but roguery, as fighting, playing,
gambling, cursing, swearing, and to speak many unprofitable
words. O children, it is very injurious for you, according to
soul and body, to run in the street: but, when you do not have
to work, take a Testament in your hand, and read in it; that
will be very appropriate for you. And you Janneken and Joosken,
you are older than your sister Mijntken; show mercy according
to your ability in assisting to provide for her board, and work
diligently with your hands, that you may have to give to him
that needeth (Eph. 4:28), for you are under great obligation,
after my departure to do the best for one another, that you may
properly help one another according to your ability. Let the
younger obey the older, that there may be no contention. In
this and all other things show your humility; for God resisteth
the proud, and giveth grace to the humble. I Pet. 5:5. And
those that are proud of heart He has cast down from their
seats, and set them of low degree thereupon. Luke 1:52. Hence,
my dear children, let not pride rule in you, in word or in
deed; for David says, "A froward heart shall depart from me: I
will not know a wicked person. Whoso privily slandereth his
neighbor, him will I cut off; him that hath a high look and a
proud heart will not I suffer. Mine eyes shall be upon the
faithful of the land, that they may dwell with me: he that
walketh in a perfect way, he shall serve me." Ps. 101:4-6. O my
dear children, be good and kind to one another, and let no
spiteful words be heard from you, either to one another or to
any one else. Be also obedient to my wife, your mother; for the
Lord's sake, and for my sake, for she was very dear and
precious to me; but now I must leave her and you for the name
of the Lord, according to the command of Christ, which I would
not do for all the world, but for the Lord and the Gospel's
sake we must forsake everything, father, mother, wife,child,
brothers, sisters, lands, house, home, yea, moreover even our
own life else we are not worthy to be His disciples. Matt.
10:37; Mark 8:35.</p>

<p>Herewith I will now bid adieu to my dear children and take
my leave from them; the Lord grant them His abundant rich
blessing, that they may grow up in a becoming godly life, and
increase in the knowledge of Christ.</p>

<p>O my dear children, neglect not to thank your Lord and God
before eating and drinking (Deuteronomy 8:10); and when you lie
down to sleep and when you arise, upon your knees, with folded
hands, entreat Him for His grace.</p>

<p>I now commend you and your mother, my dear in God beloved
wife, to the Lord, who is able to provide for you above that we
are able to ask in our prayer, in soul and body. And it is also
my wish, that this testament be copied for you, and that it be
preserved for Heyne and the children, in remembrance of me, and
when it begins to wear out, have it copied again, that it do
not perish; this I kindly request. Adieu, Heyne. Farewell,
adieu, Janneken, my oldest daughter, and farewell, adieu,
Joosken; farewell, adieu, Mijntken, and adieu, my dear in God
beloved wife and sister in the Lord. Adieu, we must now part.
The Almighty God, who blessed Abraham, Isaac and Jacob, also
bless you in heavenly places, through Jesus Christ. Amen.</p>

<p>The crucified Christ, blessed be He, be your comfort and
abundant, rich treasure of grace. The peace of God and the
communion of the Holy Ghost be with you. Once more adieu.</p>

<p>Farewell and adieu, dear Neelken. I thank the Lord and you
for the kind fellowship and the love you have shown me. I go
before; the Lord direct your hearts in the love of God and the
patience of Christ, that I may find you with the Lord. II
Thessalonians 3:5.</p>

<p>By me, from prison at Ghent, written on the second day of
Dec. 1572.</p>

<p class="c5">MATTHEUS BERNAERTS.</p>

<h2>A THANKSGIVING BEFORE AND AFTER EATING,<br />
WHICH MATTHEUS BERNAERTS, CALLED VAN<br />
LINCKEN, COMPOSED IN HIS PRISON AND<br />
SENT TO HIS CHILDREN</h2> 

<p><i>Before eating</i></p>

<p>O taste and see that the Lord is good, who has created these
creatures, and given them to those that believe, to be used by
them with thanksgiving, to the praise and glory of His holy
name. (Ps. 34</p>

<p>8; I Tim. 4:3). O dearest, most gracious, merciful, eternal
Father do not forget Thy poor, miserable children, that are
persecuted for Thy holy name's sake.</p>

<p><i>After eating</i></p>

<p>Let us now praise and thank the Lord, who has so graciously
fed us in our bodies. Let us entreat the Father, to feed us now
with the bread of eternal life, that we may with our spirits,
souls and bodies</p>

</div><div id="952"> 

<p>that have been fed do His holy will. O dearest, most
gracious, merciful, eternal Father do not forget Thy poor,
miserable children, that are persecuted for Thy holy name's
sake. Amen:</p>

<p>Written by me in my prison.</p>

<p class="c5">MATTHEUS BERNAERTS,</p>

<p class="c5">called van Lincken.</p><br />

<h1>ADRIAN ROGIERS, BURNED FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, AT GHENT IN FLANDERS, THE 4TH OF DECEMBER, A. D. 1572</h1> 

<p>Here follow three letters which Adrian Rogiers wrote from
his prison.</p>

<p class="c8"><i>First letter to his wife,</i></p>

<p>Out of tender love, an affectionate greeting to you my most
dearly beloved wife, whom I love from the heart, this the Lord
knows who knows all things, and, according to the words of
Jeremiah, tries men's hearts and reins. Jer. 17:10. Further, my
love, after this my proper and Christian salutation, let me,
please, inform you, that I, the Lord be praised forever, am in
tolerably good health according to the 'flesh, and according to
the spirit, God be praised, my mind is disposed to'leap by' our
God over a wall. Ps: 18:29. However, my dearest, I trust
through the goodness of God, that you are also well in soul and
body, and prepared, by the help of God rather to die honorably
with Eleazar, than to live with ignominy.. II Mac. 6:19. The
almighty Lord, who in time of need provides bread, and
according to the words of the prophet, gives both wine and milk
without price (Isa. 55:1), may so strengthen and confirm you
and us all, by His Holy Spirit, that we may in our present
tribulation be able to bear all that comes upon us for the
Lord's sake, and may fear His name, for thereunto has God
delivered us from him that was too strong for us, that we
should serve and fear Him in true righteousness all our lives,
for Sirach says, "There is nothing better than the fear of the
Lord." Sir. 23:27. Therefore, O my dear wife, let us fear the
Lord with all our heart, and in every distress let us flee to
the Lord, and He will help us, for David says, "The Lord lays
upon us a burden, but he also helps us bear it; for we have a
God that helps, and the Lord of lords that delivers from
death." Ps. 68:20. For He is, says the prophet, a strength to
the poor, a strength to the needy in his distress, a refuge
from the storm, and a shadow from the heat. Isa. 25:4. For He
stands at the right hand of the poor, to save him from those
that condemn his soul. Ps. 109:31, But God shall wound the head
of His enemies, and the hairy scalp of such a one as goeth on
still in his trespasses. Ps. 68:21. For Judith also says, "Woe
to the heathen that persecute my people I for the Lord Almighty
shall judge them, and visit them in the day of vengeance; he
shall torment their body with fire and worms, and they shall
burn and weep forever." Judith 16: 17. But that with which the
Lord chastiseth us, O my chosen, endures but for a moment, for
Davidsays, "Weeping may endure for a night, but joy cometh in
the morning." Psalm 30:5."For God," says Judith,"chastens us,
his servants, for correction; but the ungodly he punishes to
their destruction." Judith 8:27.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear wife, let us bear our cross patiently for
a little while yet; and let us consider how much our dear Lord
suffered for us, even as the prophet says, "He is despised and
rejected of men; a man of sorrows, and acquainted with
grief</p>

<p>and we hid as it were our faces from him; he was despised,
and we esteemed him not. Surely he hath 'borne our griefs, and
carried our sorrows: yet we did esteem him stricken, smitten of
God, and afflicted. But he was wounded for our tra.nsgressions,
he was bruised for our iniquities: the chastisement of our
peace was upon him; and with his stripes we are healed. All we
like sheep have gone astray; we have turned every one to his
own way; and the Lord hath laid on him the iniquity of us all.
He yeas oppressed, and he was afflicted, yet he opened not his
mouth: he is brought as a lamb to the slaughter, and as a sheep
before her shearers is dumb, so he openeth not his mouth." Isa.
53:3-7.</p>

<p>Hence, O my dear wife, since we know, as Peter teaches, that
Christ suffered in the flesh, let us arm ourselves with the
same mind; for he. that hath suffered in the flesh hath ceased
from sin; that he no longer should live the rest of his time in
the flesh to the lusts of the flesh, but to the will of God. I
Peter 4:1, 2.</p>

<p>Thus, my dearest, be of good cheer when the Lord tries you,
for it is written, "The souls of the righteous are chastised a
little, but much good shall come to them; for God proves them,
and finds them worthy for himself. He tries them as gold in the
furnace, and receives them as a fat sacrifice. And in-the time
of their visitation, they shall shine. and run to and fro like
sparks among the stubble. They shall judge the heathen, and
have dominion over all nations, and the Lord shall reign over
them forever. For they that put their trust in him shall find
that he faithfully keepeth what he hath promised; and such as
be faithful in love shall abide with him; for his saints are in
his mercy, and he hath care for his elect." Wisd. 3:5-9.</p>

<p>Therefore, O my love, let us commit our cause and the
distress that comes upon us to the Lord, and cast our care upon
Him; for He, says Peter, careth for us; and if God be for us,
says Paul, who will be against us? I Pet. 5:7; Rom. 8:31.</p>

<p>Hence, O my love, let us be of good courage, and watch
diligently, that, when our Bridegroom comes, we may triumph
with Him forever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>Further, my very dear wife, I commit you to our dear Lord;
may He in every way be your guide, for I take leave now, and
bid you adieu. Do the best for the children, as I am confident
you will.</p>

<p>Know further, my love, that I have received your letter, for
which I thank you much; greet much in my name the one that
wrote it. However,</p>

</div><div id="953"> 

<p>you must also know that I am very much grieved that I have
not heard from you so long; I beg you to let me know how it
goes with you and the children.</p>

<p>I further bid you adieu once more; pray the Lord for me, as
I do for you, and greet the acquaintances. We prisoners all
greet you; pray the Lord for us.</p>

<p>Written in my bonds, for your best, by me your dear
husband.</p>

<p>ADRIAN ROGIERS.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER LETTER BY SAID ADRIAN ROGIERS, WRIT<br />
TEN IN PRISON TO HIS WIFE</h2> 

<p>An affectionate loving salutation to you my most dearly
beloved wife, whom I wedded before God and His glorious
church.</p>

<p>Further, after all proper and Christian salutation, let me
please inform your love, that I, the Lord be forever praised,
am in tolerably good health according to the flesh, and
according to the spirit, God be praised, my mind is still
disposed, to leap by my God over a wall. However, I hope and
trust that you are also well in soul and body, God be thanked,
and unharmed in the faith. The Almighty Lord, who only,
according to what David writes, doeth wondrous things, may keep
and strengthen you and us all, together with His Holy Spirit,
that we may live and die to His glory, and be patient in this
present tribulation; and when we are tried, let us remember
that we are not the only ones, but that God, according to
Paul's writing, scourgeth every son whom he loveth. Heb. 12:6.
As it also appeared, that God before our time tried our
fathers, as Judith tells, when the city of Bethulia was
besieged, and they, because of water famine, wanted to
surrender the city after five days (Judith 8:11); whereupon
Judith admonished them to patience, saying, "Who are ye that ye
set the Lord the time and days when to help? for this tendeth
not to obtain mercy, but much rather wrath and disfavor. Let us
therefore be sorry for it, and with tears seek the face of the
Lord. And ye men and brethren, ye that are the rulers of the
people, go to the people and tell them, how God in former times
tried our fathers, whether they served him from the heart or
not. Even as our father Abraham was tried by many temptations,
whereby he remained the friend of God; even as also Isaac,
Jacob and Moses, and all who were of the number of God's
beloved, who had to overcome through much affliction, as Sirach
teaches us, saying: My child, if thou wilt be God's servant,
prepare thyself for temptation. Endure and be constant, and
depart not away, when the ungodly lure you. For as gold is
tried in the fire, so righteousness is tried in the fire of
affliction. But ye that fear the Lord, hope the best of him,
and your comfort shall not fail. For consider the examples of
the ancients, and lay them to heart; for never was any
confounded that trusted in the Lord: or who was ever forsaken,
that did abide in the fear of God?" Sir. 2:1.Thus, my very dear
wife, despair not, when you are tried by the Lord; for after He
has wounded, says job, He can heal again; for He kills, and
makes alive again, He leads into hell, and out again. Job 5:18;
Deut 32:39.</p>

<p>Thus, my very dear wife, cleave firmly to the Lord, and
diligently exercise yourself in godliness, and you shall find
that godliness is mightier than all things; for wisdom did not
forsake the righteous when he was sold, but delivered him from
sin; she went down with him into the pit, and left him not in
bonds, till she brought him the sceptre of the kingdom, and
power against those that oppressed him. Wisd. 10:13, 14.</p>

<p>Thus, my dear wife, though we are now for a little while in
tribulation, let us possess our souls with patience, for God
shall exalt us over all those that now do violence to and
oppress us, for Christ says in the Gospel, "Woe unto you that
laugh now! for ye shall mourn and weep; but rejoice ye that
weep now; for ye shall laugh." Luke 6:25, 21.</p>

<p>Therefore, O my very dear wife, let us bear the heat of the
sun, yet a little longer, and give our back to the smiters; for
yet a little while, and he that shall come will come. Isa.
50:6; Heb. 10:37. Therefore, O my love, let us willingly help
bear His reproach without the camp, and remember that the
servant is not better than his Lord;for if they have called the
master of the house Beelzebub, how much more shall they call
them of His household? Hebrews 13:13; Matt. 10:24, 25. Ah, if
they have done these things in a green tree, what shall they do
to us dry trees? Luke 23:31. Let us therefore lift up the idle
hands which hang down, and, according to Isaiah's writing,
confirm the feeble knees, to make straight paths for our feet,
and run, according to Paul's teaching, with patience the race,
that is set before us, and let us with Moses have respect unto
the recompense of the reward; for it is certainly true what
Paul writes, "If we suffer with Christ, we shall also rejoice
and reign with him." Isa. 35:3; Heb. 12:12, 13; 11:26; II Tim.
2:12. Hence let us not be weary in well doing, for in due time
we shall very abundantly and with joy reap the precious seed
which we now sow with weeping. Gal. 6:9; Ps. 126:5, 6. For our
light affliction, which is but for a moment, worketh for us a
far more exceeding and eternal weight of glory; while we look
not at the things which are seen, but at the things which are
not seen: for the things which are seen are temporal; but the
things which are not seen are eternal. II Cor. 4:17, 18. Thus,
my very dear wife, I pray you have the Lord always before your
eyes, that you may hereafter reign and triumph with the Lord
forever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>Further, my very dear wife, I commend you to the Lord, and
to His Word full of all comfort and consolation, asking you to
take my letter in good part, and kindly requesting that you
will also remember me by writing, for I am often exceedingly
desirous to hear from you.</p>

<p>I heard that you tried hard to come to me, but it</p>

</div><div id="954"> 

<p>could not be; however, be of good cheer. I hope that though
we cannot meet here, we shall hereafter meet together with the
Lord, where parting will be no more.</p>

<p>Thus, I bid you adieu. Do the best for the children, and
pray the Lord for me; I will do the same for you according to
my ability.</p>

<p>Nothing more, but greet the acquaintances very cordially in
my name; Maerten van der Straten, and Beliken van der Straten,
his very dear wife, and Hansken, Margriet and Dingentgen also
greet you and the acquaintances much; pray the Lord earnestly
for us.</p>

<p>Written in my bonds, by me your dear husband and brother in
the Lord.</p>

<p>ADRIAN ROGIERS.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER LETTER FROM ADRIAN ROGIERS TO HIS<br />
WIFE, WRITTEN IN PRISON AT GHENT</h2> 

<p>Out of a loving heart an affectionate greeting to you my
dearly beloved wife; whom I wedded before God and His glorious
church, and whom I also love from the heart, this the Lord
knows, who with His eyes that are as a flame of fire penetrates
everyhing. Rev. 1:14. Further, after all proper and Christian
salutation, let me, please, inform your love, that I am in
tolerably good health according to the flesh, and my mind is
still fixed, by the help of the Lord, to hold fast to the faith
even to the very end. Furthermore, my dear wife, I trust that
you are also well in soul and body, God be praised, and ready
to pass the time of your sojourning here, with joy, to the
praise of the Lord and the salvation of your soul. The good,
eternal and Almighty God, who through His gracious goodness
gives both wine and milk without price, strengthen and confirm
you and us all together by His Holy Spirit, that we may serve
the Lord in His fear, for there is nothing better than the fear
of the Lord, for Sirach says, "Money and riches lift up the
heart, but much more the fear of the Lord; for he that feareth
the Lord, with him it shall be well at the last." Sir. 40:26.
Therefore, O my dear lamb, cleave firmly to the Lord, and arm
yourself; put on the armor of God, that you may be able to
withstand all the subtle assaults of the devil, for our
adversary, the devil, says Peter, rests not, but walks about
us, as a roaring lion, seeking whom he may devour. Eph. 6:13; I
Pet. 5:8. Hence, O my dear sister, stand fast in the faith,
pray, and be on the watch; put on the bond of love, and beware
of false prophets, for in the last days, as Christ says, many
false prophets shall arise, saying, "Lo, here is Christ, and,
lo, there is Christ," but do not go forth. And they shall
say, "Behold, he is in the desert, and in the chamber; but
believe them not. For as the lightning cometh out of the east,
and shineth even unto the west; so shall also the coming of the
Son of man be." Matt. 24:23. Therefore, O my love, persevere
steadfastly, till you are taken hence; for yet a little while,
and He that shall come will come, Hence possess your soul with
patience, and endure the heat of the sun for a little while,
for Christ has promised us tribulation in the world, and God
also speaks through the prophet, saying, "Be in pain, and labor
to bring forth, O daughter of Zion, like a woman in travail:
for now shalt thou go forth out of the city, and thou shalt
dwell in the field." John 16:33; Mic. 4:10. In short, the
kingdom of heaven suffereth violence, and the violent take it
by force. Matt. 11:12. And Paul also says that we must through
much tribulation enter into the kingdom of God. Acts 14:22. For
Christ, who is our head, went before us, and had to suffer much
reproach for our sake, as the prophet says, "He took upon him
all our sins, and bore our reproach, and he is dumb as a sheep
before her shearers: and when he was reviled, he reviled not
again, and when he was threatened, he threatened not again, but
committed vengeance to him that judgeth righteously." Isa.
53:6, 7; I Pet. 2:23. Thus we must also, my dear wife,
according to the words of Peter, follow the Lord's footsteps.
For Paul says, "Being reviled we bless." I Cor. 4:12. And Christ
also taught us to pray for those that afflict us. Matt.
5:44.</p>

<p>Hence, O my dear lamb, let us in all things show ourselves
true members of Christ, and think as Paul says, "If we suffer
with Christ, we shall also reign with him." II Tim. 2:12. Let
us therefore lay aside all malice, and shun the sin which doth
beset us, and follow after holiness, without which no man shall
see the Lord. I Pet. 2:1; Heb. 12:1, 14. Oh, let us adorn
ourselves with a holy conversation, and let us not be conformed
to the world, which shall pass away with its lusts.</p>

<p>Therefore, O my dear lamb, let us watch diligently, as
servants that constantly wait for their Lord, that we may
through the grace of God be partakers of the glorious reward,
with all the elect children of God, forever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>Further, my dear wife, I do not know much more to write you,
but pray you to excuse my little gift, for if Habakkuk had
brought something better, you would have fared better. <i>Hist.
of Dest. of Drag. 33, etc.</i></p>

<p>Furthermore, my dear wife, know that I received what you
sent me, for which I thank you sincerely, for it was to me a
great consolation. Further, my dear wife, Maerten van der
Straten and his dear wife, Beliken van der Straten, greet you
much. Margriet van der Sluys, and Dingentgen of Honschoten, and
that honorable youth Hansken of Oudenaerde greet you much, and
finally we all jointly ask you, earnestly to pray to the Lord
for us, that He will make us meet rather to die honorably with
Eleazar, than to live with ignominy. Nothing more, but I
commend you to the Lord, and to the rich, comforting Word of
His grace. And do the best for the children in every way; teach
them to fear the Lord; though I am confident that you will do
this; I can not forbear to write it; but whatever I do is done
out of pure love and from a good heart.</p>

</div><div id="955"> 

<p>Farewell; do the best in the beginning and in the end.</p>

<p>Written for your service, by me your dear husband and
brother in the Lord.</p>

<p>ADRIAN ROGIERS.</p>

<br />

<h1>MAERTEN VAN DER STRATEN,. WITH BELIKEN HIS WIFE,
A. D. 1572</h1> 

<p>At this time yet another pious brother, named Maerten van
der Straten born at Kortrijck in Flanders, with his wife, named
Beliken van der Straten, fell into the hands of the enemies of
the truth, so that after manifold temptations their faith was
found much more precious, than perishable gold, which is tried
by fire. Hence Maerten van der Straten, and two other brethren
and a sister (who are separately mentioned in this book), on
the 4th of December, A. D. 1572, in the city of Ghent,
steadfastly delivered up their bodies as a sacrifice acceptable
unto God, and were together burned in the Friday Market, with
balls in their mouths; and Beliken van der Straten was
subsequently, in 1573, in Lent, offered up in the same place
for the truth; having thus fought a good fight, finished the
course, kept the faith, and, notwithstanding the opposition of
the tyrants taken the kingdom of God by force.</p>

<p>Concerning these two pious witnesses a separate book has
been printed, containing many excellent letters by Maerten van
der Straten, and several hymns, which these persons composed
and addressed to each other, and to others in prison. Of these
letters we communicate to you several, as follows.</p>

<h2>THE FIRST LETTER FROM MAERTEN VAN DER<br />
STRATEN TO HIS WIFE</h2> 

<p>I Maerten van der Straten, your dear husband and brother in
the Lord (both unworthily, however) wish you, my affectionately
beloved wife, Beliken van der Straten, who are with me,
according to Paul's writing, in the mouth of the lion (II
Timothy 4:17), and wounded by Babylon's watchmen (Canticles
5:7), much grace and mercy from God our heavenly Father; and
may the love of His Son be multiplied to you, and may the
power, of the Holy Ghost richly dwell in you, that you may to
the praise of the Lord bring forth good and meet fruits, and
let your light shine before men, even as a city that is set on
a high hill, that you may leave behind you a good name among
the heathen, and a good memory in Israel; and the God of our
fathers grant you grace, and prosper what you undertake, that
Israel may rejoice over you, and that your name may be reckoned
among all the saints, and that you may hereafter play the new
song, before the throne of the Lord, forever and ever. Rev.
14:2, 3. This I wish you, my chosen love, with all the strength
of my soul, and from a heart full of love.</p>

<p>Out of a fond heart permeated with love, an affectionate
greeting to you, O my dearest 'love, whom I love with all my
heart, in accordance withthe Word of God, that a man shall
leave father and mother, and cleave to his wife. For you, O my
dear lamb, are flesh of my flesh, and bone of my bones; and no
man, says Paul, ever yet hated his own flesh.; but nourisheth
and cherisheth it. Eph. 5:29. Hence I have good reason to love
you, as I also do, this the Almighty Lord- knows, who,
according to the words of Jeremiah, tries men's hearts and
reins. Jer. 17:10.</p>

<p>Further, after this my proper and Christian salutation,
know, my affectionately beloved wife, that I, according to the
words of Sirach, add day to day through much tribulation, as
one that lodges in the field, and receives, many a storm, hail
and rain on his body. But God, who kills and makes alive, will,
I hope, preserve me, that I shall with Eleazar prefer an
honorable death to an ignominious life.</p>

<p>Furthermore, my dearly beloved, whom I took by the hand with
tears of joy, I hope and trust that you are alsowell in soul
and body, ready with Susanna rather to fall into the hands of
men, than to sin in the sight of the living God, who, with His
eyes, which are like a flame of.fire, penetrates all things.
Sus. 23; Rev. 1:14. The Almighty Lord of lords, who, .according
to Paul's writing, is rich in goodness, and abounds with grace
and mercy, look upon you and us all with His gracious eyes, and
deliver us from this misery; for I, like you, am at this time
in great distress, besieged as those of Bethulia (Judith 7); my
enemies have turned away the water with which I was formerly
wont to refresh my heart, and they have compassed about the
fountains where I was accustomed to quench my thirst. But the
Almighty King is the true fountain, who, as Jeremiah says, with
His learned tongue comforts the weary soul, and, according to
the words of the prophet, in time of need gives bread, and in
thirst water; Him, I hope, they shall not intrench or compass
about; for He regards neither grated windows nor bolts, neither
locks nor doors; and He, I hope, will visit us before long, for
He knows that we are most sorely smitten and wounded by
Babylon's watchmen, in a dry and dark land, far and deep in
Babylonia, where neither His word nor His beautiful songs of
praise are heard. Jer. 31:25; Isa. 30:20; Cant. 5:7; Ps.
137:1.</p>

<p>Hence I hope that He will exercise mercy above justice over
us, since He sees our tribulation, and knows that I, for my
part, am not able to bear it, because, my weakness is so great;
for among all that fear God there is no one so imperfect as I
am. For -my miserable weakness is so manifold, that I often
bewail it with tears, and I am so despondent that it seems to
me that my heart is convulsed, because the Lord does not take
away my reproach. Hence I may well say with David, "O Lord God
of my salvation, I have cried day and night before thee: let my
prayer come before thee: incline thine ear unto my"cry; for my
soul is full of troubles</p>

<p>and my life draweth nigh unto the grave. I am counted with
them that go down into the pit; I am</p>

</div><div id="956"> 

<p>as a man that hath no strength: free among the dead, like
the slain that lie in the grave, whom thou rememberest no more:
and they are cut off from thy hand. Thou hast laid me in the
lowest pit, in darkness, in the deeps. Thy wrath lieth hard
upon me, and thou hast afflicted me with all thy waves" (Ps.
88:1-7); for all my persecutors hold counsel against me,
utterly to starve my hungry soul, and to deprive my thirsty
soul of drink. Hence I may well say with the prophet, "My
enemies wait for my soul, and they render me evil for good, to
bring me into sorrow." Ps. 56:6.</p>

<p>Hence, O my love, my dearest love, I cannot forbear to utter
my complaint before you, to ease my sorrowful heart, which is
often so disconsolate, yea, so disconsolate, that I might well
say with David, in my despondency: O Lord, I am cut off from
before Thine eyes (Ps. 31:22); yet I trust that He will before
long hear the voice of my supplication. Hence I pray you, my
dear lamb, let not your ears become weary of hearing my
sorrowful complaint, nor let your eyes tire of beholding my
afflicted countenance. I hope that the Lord will so order it,
that it will not last much longer; hence bear patiently with me
for a little while yet, even as you have always done towards
me. For when it did not go well with us according to the flesh,
you always showed more patience than I, for which I heartily
thank you. For your hands were more diligent than mine to
maintain the household; and you walked more piously by your
faith before God, than I; and your patience is greater even
until this present day, than mine. Hence I have good reason to
love you more than Paul loved the church at Ephesus, which he
yet for three years warned night and day, with anxiety, with
watching, and with tears. Acts 20:19, 31. O my lamb, my love,
my dearest love, I have now, God be praised, also had you for
about three years, and have in these our bonds of tribulation
had great anxiety day and night for you, and have sighed so
many a sigh, and wept so many a tear, which I would not have
wept, had I been able to speak to you. But now, my
affectionately beloved wife, since God has so ordered it, that
I must leave you, and, as it seems, go before, I say thus:
Though I am not worthy to exhort you, I yet exhort you in this
letter with tears, and beseech you, always to have the Lord
before your eyes, and to cleave to Him with prayer and fasting.
For I know that if God takes me out of the flesh before you,
that you will after my departure be severely assailed; and
therefore I beseech you, O my only lamb, for the Lord's sake,
that you will watch circumspectly, as did the good and wise
virgins, who expected their bridegroom every hour. And I pray
you, O my love, my dearest love, if I have found grace before
your eyes, remember me, even as the pious, God-fearing Judith
remembered her husband. Jud. 16:22. O Beliken, Beliken, my
dearly beloved, the three years which we have lived together do
not seem to me to be three days; hence when I think of the
parting, my heart is troubled.Yet I would, if it must be, that
the Lord would come speedily. For I have, the Lord knows, so
many sore vexations, so that I may well utter my complaint with
David, and say, "O Lord, my chastisement is ready every morning"
(Ps. 73:14); for he that seeks my soul, as a bird without
cause, neither sleeps nor slumbers day nor night, evening nor
morning; but I expect with Paul, that God, before long, will
deliver me and us all out of the mouth of the lion. II Tim.
4:17. Further, my affectionately beloved wife, Beliken van der
Straten, whom I love from the heart, let me, please tell your
love, that I do not know much more to write at this;' time, but
I commend you to Almighty God, and to His comforting Word.
Moreover, I take leave from you, even as bound Israel, who gave
their children the last milk; however, God who made the
heavenly host, is well able to turn the elephants back again.
III Macc. 180. His will be done, and not ours. Nothing more.
The Lord be with you. Greet them that are with you, from me.
Adrian also greets you much.</p>

<p>Written by me, your dear husband and brother in the Lord.
MAERTEN VAN DER STRATEN.</p>

<h2>THE SECOND LETTER FROM MAERTEN VAN DER<br />
STRATEN TO HIS WIFE</h2> 

<p>I Maerten van der Straten, your dearly beloved husband and
brother in the Lord, wish you my affectionately beloved wife
and sister in the Lord, Beliken van der Straten, much grace and
mercy from God our heavenly Father; and may the love of His Son
always be multiplied to you, and the power of the Holy Ghost
dwell in you richly, that you may thereby lead a chaste
conversation among the heathen, and be a light for them that
sit in darkness, so that you, according to Isaiah's writing,
may see the King in His beauty (Isa. 33:17) and be numbered
among the royal host that have washed their robes in the blood
of the Lamb, our Lord Jesus Christ, who bore our reproach,
healed our wounds, and restored for us that which He had not
taken away, that He might deliver us from this present evil
world, according to the will of God His Father; to whom be
honor, power, glory, and praise, for ever and ever. Amen. Ps.
69:4; Gal. 1:4.</p>

<p>Cordially written to you, my chosen, dearest love Beliken
van der Straten, whom I love from the heart, yea, more than my
own life, for you are flesh of my flesh. In short, you are mine
and I am yours. Hence I thank the Lord without ceasing, that He
has given me you; for I would not have thought that God would
have given me such a faithful helpmate, with whom I have found
so much love and patience; but God has in every way shown me
more mercy than I am worthy, and I hope He will do so yet, when
I shall need it most, for He is a gracious God, who according
to Paul's writing, is rich in goodness, and abounds in mercy.
Eph. 2:4.</p>

</div><div id="957"> 

<p>Further, my dearly beloved, after this my brotherly
salutation, let me, please, inform your love, that my mind, God
be praised, is fixed by His help, to live and die in the truth.
However, my love, I trust that through the grace of the Lord
you are also thus minded, by His help to fear His name all the
days of your life. The Lord of lords, and God of gods, grant
you and us all His grace to this end.</p>

<p>Furthermore, Beliken, my love, I understand it to be your
request, that I shall write to you once more, which it is
impossible for me to refuse you; yet I am unworthy to write to
you, because of the thorn which I have in my flesh, for my
weakness is so great, that I might well say, "Oh, that my head
were waters, that I might day and night bewail my miserable
weakness"; for my weakness is exceeding great, and my sorrow
moreover is not small, for when I think, O Beliken, my only
lamb, that I must part from you, and leave you among this
adulterous generation, oh, then my heart is burdened unto
death, and when I think; if God should take you out of the
flesh before me, oh, then my heart is troubled still more, for
I feel that after your departure, I should not see a single
happy day. Thus my thoughts distress me from every side, so
that I may well say with Susanna,"Oh, in what a great strait am
I now!" Sus. 22. Yea, this miserable state has so laid hold on
me, that I may well cry to God, and say with Hezekiah, "O Lord,
ease me: for I suffer distress" (Isa. 38:14), yea, such
distress as is suffered by the hinds, when they writhe to bring
forth. Moreover, I am ofttimes more despondent than Jonah, when
he was smitten down by the sun, Jonah 4:8. Hence I may also
well say, "O tribulation and vexation, how long will ye live in
me?" Yea, moreover. I may well say with David, "My enemies
ploughed upon my back, and made long their furrows." Ps. 129:3.
But then I console myself again, O my love, when I remember,
that God, as Paul says, chasteneth whom He loveth, and
scourgeth every son whom He receiveth.; and with the temptation
also makes a way to escape, that one may be able to bear it,
which I have often experienced. Heb. 12:6; I Cor. 10:13. Hence
I also thank the Lord, who has everywhere delivered me from the
snare of the fowler. Ps. 91:3. Therefore I will also with David
praise the Lord and glorify Him among many, for He stands at
the right hand of His poor, to save him from those that condemn
his soul. Ps. 92:1; 109:31. Hence, O my chosen, dearest love,
let us firmly cleave to the Lord, and not stumble, though the
wicked persecutes him that is more righteous than himself. For
job says, "The ungodly pluck the child from the breast and make
it an orphan in the city; they cause men to sigh, and the souls
of the slain to cry out; and God troubleth them not." Job 24:9,
12. But it is nevertheless certain, that God will not always
say amen to their course. For He says by the prophet, "I hold my
peace for a time, and am still, but at the last I will avenge
myself on mine enemies." Isaiah 42:1 S, For I lift up my hand
toheaven, and say, I live for ever. If I whet my glittering
sword, and mine hand take hold on judgment; I will render
vengeance to mine enemies, and will reward them that hate me. I
will make mine arrows drunk with blood, and my sword shall
devour flesh over the blood of the slain, and over the
captives, and over the uncovered head of the enemy. Hence,
Moses says, "Rejoice, all ye that are his people; for he will
avenge the blood of his servants, and render vengeance to his
adversaries; but he will be. merciful unto the land of his
people." Deuteronomy 32:40-43. Thus, O my love, my only lamb,
let us be of good courage: though we must now sow in tears, we
shall in due time, I hope, reap an abundant harvest. For God
says through the prophet, "Rejoice ye with Jerusalem, and be
glad with her, all ye that love her: rejoice for joy with her,
all ye that mourn for her; that ye may suck, and be satisfied
with the breasts of her consolations; that ye may milk out, and
be delighted with the abundance of her glory." Isa. 66:10,
11.</p>

<p>Thus, O my chosen, dearest love, let us for a little while
help the Lord bear His reproach: for it is a faithful saying,
says Paul, "If we suffer with Christ, we shall also reign with
him, and if we die with him we shall also live with him; and
then all tears shall be wiped away from our eyes, and all our
tribulation shall be changed into eternal joy. Hence, O my
love, let us diligently pray the Lord, that this promise may be
fulfilled in us, and that we may be found citizens in the
beautiful city where the walls are of sapphire and the streets
pure gold." Rev. 21:18.</p>

<p>Further my love, I will commend you to our dear Lord; may He
keep and govern you as His daughter, for I take leave now and
bid you adieu.</p>

<p>Oh, adieu, my affectionately beloved, for we must part in
tears. Oh, adieu, Beliken van der Straten, my very dear wife,
whose hand I took with tears of joy. Oh, bitter parting, how
hard it is for me! Once more I say adieu. O Beliken, my chosen,
dearest love, I thank you most affectionately for all your pure
love. May the Lord recompense you. Greet from me those that are
with you. Adrian also greets you much. The Lord be with
you.</p>

<p>Written in my bonds, by me, your weak brother and servant,
as much as I am able.</p>

<p class="c5">MAERTEN VAN DER STRATEN.</p>

<h2>THIRD LETTER FROM MAERTEN VAN DER STRATEN,<br />
TO HIS WIFE</h2> 

<p>I Maerten van der Straten your affectionately beloved
husband and brother in the Lord, yet both unworthily, wish you
my very dear, beloved wife and sister in the Lord, Beliken van
der Straten, much grace and mercy from God our heavenly Father,
and may the love of His Son be multiplied to you, and may God,
moreover, fill you, like Jeremiah, with His Holy Spirit, that
you may thereby withstand all the subtle assaults of the devil,
and after the victory, with all God's children, receive</p>

</div><div id="958"> 

<p>the crown of glory upon the pleasant mountain where,
according to the writing of Esdras roses and lilies grow. II
Esd. 2:19. And, my dearly beloved, I pray the Lord, to make you
meet and worthy to play the new song before the throne of His
glory, for ever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>Cordially written out of tender love, to you Beliken van der
Straten. O my love, my chosen, dearest love, which through
God's providence was given to me before His church by my
father, and whose hand I took with tears of joy, for which I
also thank the Lord, that He gave me you, for I would not have
thought myself worthy of you. Hence this is also a reason for
me, to love you the more. Yet, I call God to witness, that I
love you as my soul, yea, more than the heart in my body, which
I am bound also to do according to the demand of the
Scriptures, for, since I, according to John's writing, am bound
to love my brother, how much more then must I love you since
you, according to the Word of God and Paul's declaration, are
flesh of my flesh, and bone of my bones. And the apostle also
says, "No man ever yet hated his own flesh; but nourisheth and
cherisheth it." Eph. 5:29. In short, he that loves his wife
also loves himself.</p>

<p>Further, Beliken, my beloved, after this my proper and
Christian salutation, let me, please, inform your love that I,
the Lord be praised, am in tolerably good health according to
the flesh, and according to the spirit, God be praised, my mind
is still fixed to fear the Lord, all the days of my life,
according to my weak ability. Furthermore, my dearest, I have
the same confidence concerning you, that you are well both in
soul and body, prepared to live and die to the glory of the
Lord. This worshipful, good God, who has broken the bow of the
mighty, and according to the word of the prophet, through the
gracious goodness gives both wine and milk without price (Isa.
55:1), may strengthen and confirm you and us all in this lion's
den, where we, on every hand, are so severely assailed and so
greatly distressed, like Israel, when they were compassed about
by Holofernes. Jud. 7. Yea, the false elders do so distress us,
that we can with Susanna find nowhere a place of escape, but
behold death before our eyes on every hand; for our persecutors
are evening wolves, that leave nothing over till the morning.
Hab. 1:8. Hence we may well say with David, "They break in
pieces thy people, O Lord, and afflict thine heritage. They
slay the widow and the stranger, and murder the fatherless.
They gather themselves together against the soul of the
righteous, and condemn the innocent blood." Ps. 94:5, 6,
21.</p>

<p>But, my dearly beloved, let us not therefore despond, though
we are now tried in the furnace of affliction, for the prophet
says: ."Blessed is the man whom thou chastenest, O Lord, and
teachest him out of thy law, that he may have patience in the
day of adversity, until the pit be digged for thewicked. For
the Lord will not cast off his people, neither will forsake his
inheritance. For he regardeth the prayer of the destitute, and
doth not despise their petitions; for he looketh down from the
height of his sanctuary, and from heaven doth the Lord behold
tie earth, to hear the groaning of the prisoner." Ps. 94:12-14;
102:17, 19, 20. For Sara said, "This I truly know, if a man
serve God, he is comforted after temptation, and delivered from
affliction, and after chastisement he findeth grace. For thou,
O Lord, delightest not in our destruction; for after the storm
thou causest the sun to shine again, and after weeping and
mourning thou dost give us joy abundantly. Eternal praise to
thy name O God of Israel, for with thee is the fountain of
life, and in thy light we see light." Tobit 3:11; Ps. 36:9.</p>

<p>Hence, my love, O my dearest love, let us patiently drink
the cup of the Lord, for we know, according to the words of
Isaiah, that truth is fallen in the street, and that he that
turneth from his evil ways is the spoil of every one. Isa.
59:14, 15. For Esdras says, "For there shall be in every place,
and in the next cities, a great insurrection upon those that
fear the Lord. They (the ungodly), shall be like mad men,
sparing none, but still spoiling and destroying those that fear
the Lord. For they shall waste and take away' their goods, and
cast them out of their houses. Then shall they be known (says
the Lord); who are my chosen; and they shall be tried as the
gold in the fire." II Esd. 16:70-73.</p>

<p>Therefore, O my chosen love, my lamb, let us give our back
to the smiters for a little while yet, and look to the author
of our faith, the King of kings and Lord of lords, who for our
sakes was so maltreated and disfigured, that He Himself
says, "If they have done these things in a green tree, what shall
be done in the dry." Luke 23:31. Hence, O my love, my dearest
love, let us think as Paul, that our light affliction, which is
but for a moment, will hereafter work for us a far more
exceeding and eternal weight of glory. II Cor. 4:17. For
Solomon says, "But the righteous live for evermore; their reward
also is with the Lord, and the care of them is with the Most
High. Therefore shall they receive a glorious kingdom, and a
beautiful crown from the Lord's hand: for with his right hand
shall he sever them, and with his arm shall he protect them."
Wisd. 5:15, 16. Therefore, O my dear lamb, let us diligently
pray the Lord, that we may be worthy at His coming, to live
with Him for ever and ever.</p>

<p>Further, my chosen, dearly beloved, know that I do not know
much more to write you, but I commend you into the hands of the
Lord, and bid you adieu if I should write you no more; for our
enemies are now so greatly incensed at us, that they gnash on
us with their teeth, even as they did on Stephen in the
judgment hall. I therefore yet give you this letter, even as
Israel, when they were bound, gave their children the last
milk. And fur-</p>

</div><div id="959"> 

<p>thermore, I thank you, O my love, for all your pure love and
sincere friendship, and I also thank you much for the sleeves
you made me; they stand me in better stead than the coat which
was sent me. Rightly did Sirach say, that one friend helps the
other in time of need, but much more yet husband and wife.</p>

<p>Once more I take leave, and bid you adieu; O adieu, Beliken,
my dearest. Greet from me them that are with you. Adrian also
greets you much.</p>

<p>Written by me, your dear husband and brother in the
Lord.</p>

<p class="c5">MAERTEN VAN DER STRATEN.</p>

<p>Pray for me.</p>

<h2>THE FOURTH LETTER FROM MAERTEN VAN DER<br />
STRATEN, TO ANNA SERVAES</h2> 

<p>I, Maerten van der Straten, your unworthy friend and
brother, wish you, my beloved, dear sister in the Lord, Anna
Servaes, much grace and mercy from God our heavenly Father; and
may the love of His Son be in you as a burning fire, that you
may become perfect unto the measure of the stature of the
fullness of Christ, having your conversation honest among the
Gentiles, and bearing good fruits, as a tree planted by the
rivers of water, so that you may be numbered among the royal
priesthood, the peculiar people, which God, according to the
writings of Moses, bore on eagle's wings; so that you, when the
land shall again be divided to Israel, may possess an
inheritance full of joy, for ever and ever. Amen. Eph. 4:13; I
Pet. 2:12; Ps. 1:3; I Pet. 2:9; Deut. 32:11.</p>

<p>A cordial, fond and affectionate greeting to you, my dear
and much beloved sister in the Lord, Anna Servaes, whom I love
with a pure love out of a pure heart, of which God be my judge,
who, according to the word of Jeremiah, tries men's hearts and
reins. Further, after all proper and Christian salutation, let
me, please, inform your love, that I and my dear wife are in
tolerably good health according to the flesh, and according to
the spirit we hope by God's assistance to keep the covenant
which we once made with the Lord our God, when we bowed our
knees before Him and His glorious majesty. Yes, we moreover
trust that also you are well in soul and body, ready to perform
your journey to Bethel, and to prophesy against Jeroboam and
his altar. I Kings 13:1. To this end, may you and we all be
strengthened by the only and eternal, almighty God, whose
tabernacle is on high, and who lives far above all heavens, in
a light which, according to the words of Paul (I Tim. 6:16), no
man can approach unto; that we may fear and love Him above all.
For He is a jealous God, who would dwell alone in man's heart;
for thereunto we have been delivered out of the hand of our
enemies, and from them that hate us, that we should fear and
serve Him without fear, in true righteousness and holiness, all
the days of our lives, as good and faithful servants, seeking
the praise of God, and, with Paul, counting our gain loss for
Christ's sake, lead ing a chaste, honorable life, and setting
up an ensign for the nations, that we may not make the blind to
wander out of the way, but that we, according to the words of
Peter, through a modest and good conversation, may win the
unbelieving without the Word; which Christ also teaches us in
the Gospel, saying, "Let your light shine before men, that they
may behold your good conversation, and glorify God our Father
in the day of visitation." Ex. 20:5; II Cor. 6:16; Luke 1:74,
75; Phil. 3:7; Isa. 11:12; Deut. 27:18; I Pet. 3:1, 2; Matt.
5:16; I Pet. 2:12. Hence, O my dear and much beloved sister in
the Lord, let us with all humility follow the Lord's footsteps,
that in every respect we may adorn the doctrine of the Gospel,
shining as a bright morning star among this evil and perverse
generation; then shall the King, as David writes, greatly
desire our beauty. Ps. 45:11.</p>

<p>Hence, O love, let us each seek to be the chiefest in
virtue, and patiently wait for the Lord, our Comfort, who alone
can help us, as David says, "I waited patiently for the Lord;
and he inclined unto me, and heard my cry. He brought me up
also out of a horrible pit, out of the miry clay, and set my
feet upon a rock, and established my goings. And he hath put a
new song in my mouth, even praise unto our God." Ps. 40:1-3.
Therefore, O dear lamb, let us thank the Lord, and pray that we
may not be caught through our tongue, saying with Jesus
Sirach, "O Lord God, Father and Lord of my life, let me not fall
among the slanderers, and perish among them. Oh, that I could
bridle my thoughts, and discipline my heart with the word of
God, and that I might not spare myself, if I erred, lest I
should cause sin, and create great error, and commit much evil,
and perish before my enemies, and become their sport." Sir.
23:1-3. Hence, O dear sister, let us seek God's face day and
night with tears, that we may not perish with the wicked under
the wrath of God, but that we may continue obedient in Christ
unto the end of our lives, so that we may be saved in the day
of the Lord, which, according to the words of Christ, shall
come as a thief in the night; in the which according to Peter's
writing, the heavens shall be dissolved with fire, and the
elements shall melt with fervent heat. And if all these things
are to come to pass, O how ought we to be meet and adorned with
a good, chaste and holy conversation! For the time is come that
judgment must begin at the house of God: and if it now begin at
us, and if the righteous shall scarcely be written in the book
of life, what shall the end of the ungodly be? Matt. 24:42, 43;
II Pet. 3:10-12; I Pet. 4:17, 18. Oh, well may I sigh and say
with Solomon, "O Lord, wink at the multitude of my sins." Wisd.
11:23. Hence we may also with David say, "O Lord, enter not into
judgment with us, or, thou, O Lord, shalt be justified. And
render us not according to our deeds, neither reward us
according to our works, nor chasten us, O, Lord, in thine
anger, but be merciful unto us, O Lord, according to thy
goodness, which is great." Ps.</p>

</div><div id="960"> 

<p>143:6; 6:1, 2. Therefore, O dear lamb, let us cleave to the
Lord with prayer and supplication, with a broken heart and
contrite spirit, that we may be saved, not through our merits,
but through the grace of God, and thus live with the Lord in
His eternal kingdom.</p>

<p>Further, my dear sister, I do not, because of my small gift,
know much more to write you, but commend you to the Lord, and
to the rich, comforting Word of His grace. I moreover pray you
to excuse the plain, simple letter which I, your unworthy
servant, have written, who am the weakest in Israel, yea, not
worthy to unloose your shoe's latchet; however, I yet trust in
the grace of God.</p>

<p>Furthermore, my dear sister, greet your dear husband, and
also the acquaintances, in my name. My dear wife also greets
you both, and the acquaintances much. There also greet you
much, Adriaen, Grietgen, Hansken, and Dingentgen; and all of us
prisoners jointly request of you, that you will diligently pray
the Lord for us. Nothing more. Farewell, and do the best in the
beginning and in the end.</p>

<p>Written in my bonds, by me, your weak brother . and servant,
as much as I am able.</p>

<p class="c5">MAERTEN VAN DER STRATEN.</p>

<h2>THE FIFTH LETTER OF MAERTEN VAN DER,STRATEN,
,<br />
TO SERVAES JANSS</h2> 

<p>I, Maerten van der Straten, imprisoned for the Word of the
Lord, wish you my dear and much beloved brother in the Lord,
Servaes Janss, much grace and mercy from God our heavenly
Father, and also to all that have been redeemed from the earth,
and cleansed by the blood of the Lamb, our Lord Jesus Christ,
who, according to the word of the prophet, bore our reproach,
took upon Him our sins, and restored to us that which He had
not taken away, that He might deliver us from this present evil
world; according to the will of God His Father; to whom be
glory, power and honor forever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>Out of a fond heart a loving greeting to'you, my beloved,
dear friend and brother in the Lord, whom I love according to
the peculiar privilege of Israel, this the Lord knows, who
according to the words of Jeremiah, tries men's hearts and
reins, and according to David, knows men's thoughts when they
are yet afar off. Jer. 17:10; Ps. 139:2.</p>

<p>Further, after all proper and Christian salutation, let me,
please, inform your love, that I, the Lord be praised forever,
am in tolerably good health according to the flesh, and
according to the spirit my mind is still fixed to serve God all
the days of my life. I have moreover the undoubted confidence
concerning you, that you are also well in soul and body, ready
to keep the covenant which you once made with the Lord our God,
when you bowed your knees before God and His glorious majesty;
may this only, eternal, and only wise God, endow you, according
to the word of the prophet(Joel 2:28), with His Holy Spirit,
that you, led by Him, may lead a good and chaste conversation
among the Gentiles, as Christ teaches us in the Gospel,
saying, "Let your light so shine before men, that they beholding
your good conversation, may glorify God your Father."</p>

<p>Hence, O my dear brother, let us, according to the writing
of the apostle, diligently strive to be the chiefest in virtue;
as Paul also says, that we should approve ourselves as the
ministers of God, in much patience, in afflictions, in
necessities, in distresses, in stripes, in imprisonments, in
tumults, in labors, in watchings, in fastings, by pureness, by
knowledge, by longsuffering, by kindness, by the Holy Ghost, by
love unfeigned, by the Word of truth, by the power of God, by
the armour of righteousness on the right hand and on the left,
by honor and dishonor, by evil report and good report: as
deceivers, and yet true; as unknown, and yet well known; as
dying, and, behold, we live; as chastened, and not killed: For
God can wound, and heal again, as is written in the Book of
Kings, "The Lord killeth, and maketh alive: he bringeth down to
the grave, and bringeth up." Tit. 3:8; 11 Cor. 6:4-9; Deut.
32:39; 1 Sam. 2:6.</p>

<p>Hence, O my dear brother, if you be visited at any time, out
of bonds as well as in, be not grieved, nor, become weary in
the way of the Lord, though it is narrow and straight; for it
is better to suffer affliction for a little time with .God's
children, than to possess all the, treasures of Egypt; for
though man, as Christ says, should gain the world, and lose his
own soul, O what would he have then,. that he could give in
exchange for it? Heb. 11:25, 26; Matt. 16:26.</p>

<p>Therefore, O my dear brother, let us seek the kingdom of God
above all things, and let us not follow after that which is
earthly, as is written in the epistle to the Colossians, by the
holy apostle Paul, where he says, "If ye then be risen with
Christ, seek those things which are above, where Christ sitteth
on the right hand of God. Set your affection on things above,
not on things on the earth, For ye are dead, and your life is
hid with Christ in God. When Christ, who is our life, shall
appear, then shall ye also appear with him in glory.", Col.
3:1-4. For it is a faithful saying, "If we suffer with Christ,
we shall also reign with him." II Tim. 2:12. Hence let us not
be weary in well doing, for according to Paul's writing, in due
season we shall reap a most abundant harvest. Galatians 6:9.
For our light affliction, which is but for a moment, worketh
for us a far more exceeding and eternal weight of glory; while
we look not at the things which are seen, but at the things
which are not seen: for the things which are seen are temporal;
but the things which are not seen are eternal. II Cor.
4:17,18.</p>

<p>Hence, O my dear brother, let us help the author of our
faith, the Lord Jesus Christ, bear all His reproach, and let
us, as Paul says, follow after holiness, without which no man
shall see the Lord.</p>

</div><div id="961"> 

<p>Heb. 12:14. And let us seek the Lord with tears, while He
may be found, and let us bring forth genuine fruits of
repentance, that the tower of Siloam may not fall upon us, for
we have done evil long enough before the Lord. Isa. 55:6; Luke
13:4. Hence let us now, as Paul says, use our members, which we
have heretofore used from iniquity, unto iniquity, still more
abundantly from righteousness unto righteousness. And let us,
moreover, praise the Lord, because He has revealed to us the
pearl of great price that lies in the field, and is yet still
hid from so many. Matt. 13:46. Therefore, O my dear brother,
let us now, as good and faithful servants, put our talent out
upon usury, that, when our dear Lord comes, we may have gained
something, and may hear the words, "Well done, good and faithful
servant: thou hast been faithful in a few things, I will make
thee ruler over many things</p>

<p>enter thou into the joy of thy Lord." Matt. 25:23. Thus, my
dear, let us diligently look before us, and watch
circumspectly, that we do not defile our wedding garment, but
may much rather be adorned with the five wise virgins; with the
oil of love in our lamps, so that we, when our Bridegroom
comes, may enter in with Him into His eternal kingdom, where,
according to the word of Isaiah, and of the apostle,
incomprehensible joy and gladness shall endure forever.
Amen.</p>

<p>Further, my dear brother, I do not know, because of my small
gift, much more to write you, but commend you to the only,
eternal, almighty God, who according to the word of Isaiah,
hath measured the waters in the hollow of His hand, and meted
out heaven with the span, and comprehended the dust of the
earth in a measure, and weighed the mountains in scales, and
the hills in a balance; that he may keep you, so that you may
receive a crown of glory. Isa. 40:12; I Pet. 5:4.</p>

<p>Furthermore, my dear brother, I pray you, that you will
excuse this simple letter which I, unworthy one, have written,
for it were better that you would write to me; but in order to
fulfill your request I could not forbear to do it.</p>

<p>Greet your dear wife, and also the acquaintances in my name.
Beliken van der Straten, my dear wife, also greets you and
Tanneken much, and also the acquaintances. Further, all of us
prisoners greet you from the heart. Pray the Lord diligently
for us. Nothing more. Farewell, and do the best.</p>

<p>To your benefit as much as lieth in me, by me your weak
brother and servant.</p>

<p class="c5">MAERTEN VAN DER STRATEN.</p>

<h2>THE SIXTH LETTER FROM MAERTEN VAN DER<br />
STRATEN, AND BELIKEN HIS WIFE, TO<br />
ADAM V. L. AND HIS WIFE</h2> 

<p>I, Maerten van der Straten, and Beliken van der Straten, my
most dearly beloved wife., both of us prisoners for the word of
the Lord, wish our very dear brother and sister much grace and
mercy from God our heavenly Father, who dwells on high, in
alight unto which, as Paul writes, no man can approach. We
moreover wish, that you may have the love of His Son, that you
may be a light for them that sit in darkness, and that you may
shine as a bright morning star among the blind that err in the
way, so that you may hereafter, as Isaiah writes, behold the
King in His beauty, and meet with that perfect and unspeakable
joy and gladness that shall endure forever and ever. This we
wish our dear friends in the Lord, with all the strength of our
souls, out of an affectionate heart.</p>

<p>A: cordial, loving greeting to you our very dear brother
Adam V. L., and to Mariken, your very dear wife. We two
prisoners, as said above, love you, as Paul says, with a godly
love, and out of a pure heart as Peter writes; this the
Almighty Lord knows, who penetrates every thing with eyes which
are as a flame of fire.</p>

<p>Further, after all proper and Christian salutation, let me,
please, inform your love, that I and my dearly beloved lamb,
whose hand I took with tears of joy are still, the Lord be
praised forever, in tolerably good health according to the
flesh, and according to the spirit, God be praised, our mind is
still fixed, by the help of the Lord to prefer with Eleazar, an
honorable death to an ignominious life. But, dear brother and
sister in the Lord, we are also confident beyond a doubt, that
you both are well in soul and body, ready to keep the covenant
you made with Almighty God, concerning which we are exhorted by
Moses, that we should always be mindful of the covenant which
we once made with the Lord of lords. Deut. 4:9. And Paul
instructs us still more fully, that we are to call to
remembrance the day in which we were illuminated. Heb. 10:32.
The merciful King, and God of gods, who. according to the word
of the prophet, in time of need gives bread, and in thirst
water, and in the day of tribulation forgives sin, may
strengthen and confirm you and us all with His Holy Spirit,
that we, as Luke writes, may serve Him in true righteousness
and holiness all the days of our lives. And let us, O dear
friends, always have the Lord before our eyes, even as David,
who says, "I have set the Lord always before me." Ps. 16:8. And
again he says, "One thing have I desired of the Lord, that will
I seek after; that I may dwell in the house of the Lord all the
days of my life, to behold the beauty of the Lord, and to
inquire in his temple. For in the time of trouble he shall hide
me in his pavilion: in the secret of his tabernacle shall he
hide me; he shall set me up upon a rock." 27:4, 5. Hence, dear
friends, let us always seek the face of the Lord with humility,
and take good heed to our vocation, redeeming the time, because
the days are evil, as Paul says (Eph. 4:1; 5:16); for the
tongues of the builders of the tower of Babel have come to
disagree. For David says, "Violence and strife are in the- city.
Day and night they go about it upon the walls thereof: mischief
also and sorrow are in the midst of it. Wickedness is in the
midst thereof: deceit and guile depart not from her</p>

</div><div id="962"> 

<p>streets." Ps. 55:9-11. And, as the prophet says, "They fear
not God; for they lay their hands on his peaceable ones, and
break his covenant," verses 19, 20."Their mouth," as David
says,"is smoother than butter, but they have war in their
hearts: their words were softer than oil, yet are they drawn
swords," verse 21. Hence, O dearly beloved friends, let us
always watch circumspectly in the spirit, and fear our God from
the heart, and cleave to Him with prayer and supplication, even
as the royal prophet David says, "As for me, I will call upon
God; and the Lord shall save me. Evening, and morning, and at
noon, will I pray, and cry aloud: and he shall hear my voice,"
verses 16, 17.</p>

<p>Thus, dear friends when you are distressed, call upon the
Lord, and do not let the waters of Marah (Ex. 15:23) become too
bitter for you, but remember, that according to Paul's words we
must through much tribulation enter into the kingdom of God.
Even as also Christ teaches us in the Gospel, saying, "The
kingdom of heaven suffereth violence, and the violent take it
by force." Matt. 11:12. Hence, dear brother and sister, let us
willingly bear our cross, and give our back to the smiters, and
not regard it however great the heat of the sun, for the
servant is not above his master or lord; for if they have
called the master of the house Beelzebub, how much more shall
they call them of His household? Matt. 10:25. For Peter teaches
us saying, "Forasmuch then as Christ hath suffered for us in the
flesh, arm yourselves likewise with the same mind: for he that
hath suffered in the flesh hath ceased from sin; that he no
longer should live the rest of his time in the flesh to the
lusts of men, but to the will of God. For the time past of our
life may suffice us to have wrought the will of the Gentiles,
when we walked in lasciviousness, lusts, excess of wine,
revelings, banquetings, and abominable idolatries," I Pet.
4:1-3.</p>

<p>Hence, O dear friends, let us no longer live according to
the wisdom of the flesh, to indulge its lusts, but let us walk,
as Paul writes, only as becomes the Gospel, and do not let us
be unequally yoked together with unbelievers: for what
similarity or fellowship hath righteousness with
unrighteousness? and what communion hath light with darkness?
and what concord hath Christ with Belial? or what part hath he
that believeth with an infidel? and what agreement hath the
temple of God with idols? for ye are, says Paul, the temple of
the living God; as God hath said, I will dwell in them, and
walk in them; and I will be their God, and they shall be My
people. Wherefore come out from among them, and be ye separate,
saith the Lord, and touch not the unclean thing; and I will
receive you, and will be a Father unto you, and ye shall be My
sons and daughters, saith the Lord Almighty. Phil. 1:27; I I
Cor. 6:14-18.</p>

<p>Therefore, O my dear brother and sister, let us serve the
Lord with a faithful heart, and refrain our foot from every
evil way, and let us lead a chasteand pure conversation among
the Gentiles, that we, as Paul writes, may not give the
slanderer an occasion to speak evil; but let us in all things
seek the glory of the Lord with a simple heart, so that we,
according to the word of Paul, may adorn the Gospel by good
works. Tit. 2:8, 10. Hence, O dear friends, be not weary in
well doing; for what you now sow in tears, that shall you in
due season, as Paul writes, reap with joy in great abundance.
Hence let us with fasting and weeping entreat the Lord, that we
may be able to withstand in the evil day, so that we may live
with Him forever and ever. Amen. John 3:8; Eph. 6:13.</p>

<p>Further, my beloved friends, we do not know much more to
write you for this time, because of the simplicity of our
understanding; but We commend you to the Lord, and to the word
full of consolation, and bid you adieu.</p>

<p>I Maerten van der Straten, and Beliken van der Straten, my
love, have written this little out of affection and according
to your request, and we beg you to accept it in good part. We
also request the aid of your prayers.</p>

<p>Farewell; greet the acquaintances in our name, we thank you
for all the good you have shown us. Adriaen also greets you
much; and also Hansken, Margriet and Lou greet you much;
Dingentgen and we all jointly request you to pray for us.
Nothing more, but do the best first and last.</p>

<p>From us your dear friends,</p>

<p class="c5">MAERTEN AND BELIKEN VAN DER STRATEN.</p>

<br />

<h1>WILLEM DE RIJCKER, AND CHRISTOFFEL FIERENS, 
A. D. 1572</h1> 

<p>At Meenen, in Flanders, on the 5th of December, A. D. 1572,
there were sentenced to death as heretics, two pious witnesses
of God, named Willem de Rijcker and Christoffel Fierens. When
they were brought out to die, they came fearlessly, like two
sheep for the slaughter. A brother said to Willem, "Dear
brother, strive valiantly for the truth." And a sister also
cried, "O yes, dear brethren, strive valiantly." Christoffel
said, "O men, think of your salvation; for this is the way of
truth unto life." They were quickly conducted to the hut,
without being able to speak much; but they cried to God for
help and assistance, and said, "What we suffer is for the right
truth." Christoffel also said, "Sell your clothes, and buy Testaments; attend therein to
the words of God: for therein you will find life; and fear not
them that kill the body, but fear him that hath power to cast
soul and body into hell." He also thanked God, that He had
permitted him to see this day, for which he had so greatly
longed, and said further, "These members, which Thou, O Lord
hast given me, I will gladly deliver up again for Thy
doctrine." Willem said, "I have been in many perils by sea and
by land, and God has always helped me; hence I trust that He
will also not leave me in this extremity, but succor me unto
death." They then offered up their prayer to</p>

</div><div id="963"> 

<p>God, in which they said with Stephen, "O Lord, forgive them
what they do unto us, and do not lay this sin to their charge."
Willem then said, "I have now with Paul fought a good fight,
kept the faith, finished my course," etc. Finally they
cried, "O heavenly Father, into Thy hands we commend our spirits."
Many other words were spoken, which have partly been forgotten,
and it would also take too long to write them all. The
executioner then asked, whether they were ready; whereupon
Christoffel replied, "Yes, my dear friend." While Christoflel
was being strangled, Willem cried, "O dear friends, my brother
is now forbidden to speak." After that he cried once more to
the Lord, and then also inherited the crown of life. Thus did
these two die for the name of the Lord, being first strangled,
and then burnt, after Willem had been confined in prison for
more than twenty-two months; and thus they became heirs of the
promised land, in which all those that here lay down their
lives for the word of God shall find it again.</p>

<p>During the time that Willem was imprisoned, one Cornelis van
Eeckhoute was burgomaster at Meenen, who would very gladly have
seen him released; he therefore sought to persuade the priest
and others, that he [Willem] was half-wetted, whereupon Willem
was examined once, and his views asked respecting purgatory.
Willem answered that he had once lived in a convent, where on
Saturday always meat and other things were cooked for Sunday,
and that the monks, sweeping together the fire by which they
had cooked, called it purgatory.* Then the burgomaster said, "Do
you see my lords, by this you may perceive that the man is only
half-witted, for these are not the words of a reasonable man."
But Willem said that he did not want to be released from prison
as halfwitted, but that they should ask him concerning his
faith, and that he should confess it to them reasonably enough.
Thereupon he had to remain in confinement, and was finally, as
already stated, sentenced to death, this burgomaster
pronouncing the sentence. This man, some time after, driven
away through war, fled to Bruges, where he, however rich he
was, had to live very frugally, and nearly all the time borrow
money to defray his household expenses, which when it became
too great a vexation for him, he resolved to go home to Meenen,
but he died very suddenly on the way.</p>

<h2>JAN SMIT, A. D. 1572</h2> 

<p>About the year 1572 there was also another pious,
God-fearing brother, named Jan Smit, a native of the country of
Marck, but at that time residing in North Holland, near
Munnekendam; he was afterwards brought a prisoner to
Munnekendam, for the testimony of Jesus. But when after a
certain time Munnekendam was taken by the</p>

<p class="c8">* In Dutch,"Vagevuur" from"vagen" or"vegen," to
scour [and also to"sweep"] and"vuur fire;" hence a play on
words, which cannot be rendered into the English without the
loss of the humorous effect which it has in the original
tongue.-Trans.Protestants, he was released by one of their
captains. When subsequently engaged in a boat, on the Zuyder
Zee, he was again apprehended by a Spanish captain, and brought
to Amsterdam. There he remained in confinement, until it was
determined, that these prisoners should be used as oarsmen on
the Haarlem Lake, against those of Haarlem. But when this pious
Jan Smit came to the place where he was to row, he declared
that he did not feel free in his conscience, thus to row,
seeing he had no enemies; they might deal with him according to
their pleasure. Thereupon he was brought into the camp before
Haarlem, where he was sharply examined in the faith, and found
to be of the Mennonistic religion. And as examinations and
severe threats could not move him to apostatize, since he was
founded upon the firm Rock, and therefore overcame all by
faith, Don Frederick, son of the Duke of Alva, sentenced him,
there to be suspended by one leg to the gallows, which was
done, till death ensued. And thus this hero and soldier of
Jesus Christ, by saving faith overcome the world, sin, flesh
and blood, and all tyrants, and, through God's grace, obtained
the crown of eternal glory.</p>

<p>This account we received from old Simon Fijtsoon, teacher
[minister?] and elder of the church of Tessel. He declares that
this Jan Smit was his special friend.</p>

<h2>PIERIJNTGEN LOOSVELDT, OR NECKERS, A. D. 1572</h2> 

<p>At the close of the year 1572, there was apprehended at
Meenen, in Flanders, for the truth and the Word of God, a
spinster, about forty-three years old, named Pierijntgen
Loosveldt, or Neckers. While kindly ministering to a sick
person, she was walking out at a certain time, when she met the
chief bailiff, Joncker Jan de Carmago, who apprehended her, and
asked where she resided. She pleasantly replied that she did
not live very far off, and gave him the fairest words, in order
to be released. But it was all of no avail; she had to go to
prison, and on the second day, when she had not had much time
for consideration, she was summoned before the lords, and
examined concerning her faith, which she freely confessed.</p>

<p>In the first place she was accused that she had attended
imroper assemblies, contrary to the emperor's decree. But
Pierijntgen held that she had used diligence to follow Christ,
and to shun the evil, and go out from them, and join the good,
knowing that Christ says, "Where two or three are gathered
together in my name, there am I in the midst of them." Matt.
18:20. And these assemblies she could not forsake, though it
should cost her her life.</p>

<p>In the second place she was asked whether she had not had
herself rebaptized. She confessed that she had suffered herself
to be baptized according to the command of Christ, which they
considered Anabaptism, not at all regarding the instance of
the</p>

</div><div id="964"> 

<p>disciples who, though they had received John's baptism, did
nevertheless, after they had heard the preaching of Paul,
suffer themselves also to be baptized in the name of Jesus. And
that one must first believe on Jesus Christ, and be baptized
upon such faith, according to the teaching of the Scriptures,
which also say, that baptism is a burial of sin and the answer
of a good conscience.</p>

<p>When they asked her, who was present when she was baptized,
she did not confess it, however hard she was threatened.</p>

<p>In the third place they asked her, whether she did not
regard the priests as the vicars of Christ, who had power to
forgive sin; and that whatever they bound or loosed had to
remain bound or loosed. But she could not confess that they are
such vicars of Christ who are not minded as He is; for He is
the true Shepherd, who laid down His life for His sheep, while
the priests do the. very opposite. He is the true Mediator
between God and men (I Tim. 2:5) , and His Father's vicar. He
is the open, clear Fountain (Zech. 13:1), who calls to Him all
those who are burdened and laden with sin. He is the true pool
with five entrances, of which John tells (John 5:2), and all who truly repent shall
receive the forgiveness of their sins. Luke 24:47. No one was
found worthy to open the book with seven seals, but the Lamb
Jesus Christ. Rev. 5:1. He is the right door; it is of no avail
whether any one will open or shut, the ungodly must remain
without. John 10:9; Rev. 22:15.</p>

<p>In the fourth place she was asked, whether she did not
confess that the body of Christ was in the sacrament or wafer,
when the priest had pronounced the words over it, and
consecrated it in the mass. But she could regard the mass, with
all that pertained to it, for nothing more than a plant,
planted by men, which God should root up. Matt. 15:13. But she
confessed that Christ had left us the Supper to be observed in
remembrance of Him, according to Paul's doctrine, and thereby
to shew the Lord's death. I Cor. 11:25, 26.</p>

<p>In the fifth place she was also asked whether she did not
confess that infant baptism was necessary for salvation, and
for the washing away of the original sin which has adhered to
us from Adam. But her confession was, that one could receive
but one baptism, and that only they are worthy of it</p>

</div><div id="965"> 

<p>who forsake sin, or repent, and believe in the name of Jesus
Christ; and that it was also not a washing away of sin, but the
answer of a good conscience, and that the blood of Christ
cleanseth us from all sin. Ephesians 4:5; Acts 2:38; I Pet.
3:21; I John 1:7.</p>

<p>In the sixth place she was asked whether she did not believe
that Christ had assumed His flesh from Mary. But she confessed
that He was from above, and had come down from the Father; that
the Word had become flesh, even as John says, "That which was
from the beginning, which we have heard, which we have seen
with our eyes, which we have looked upon, and our hands have
handled, of the Word of life." And as He Himself says, that He
is the bread which came down from heaven. That He was also the
only reconciler, redeemer and advocate. To investigate further,
was not necessary to her salvation. John 8:23; 1:14; I John
1:1; John 6:31; Rom. 5:10; I John 2:1.</p>

<p>In the seventh place she was also asked whether she did not
confess that three persons constituted one true God. Thereupon
she confessed that there were three names in one Divine Being,
namely, Father, Son and Holy Ghost. But the Father who sent the
Son she could not regard as a person; for the heaven is His
throne, and the earth is His footstool; Christ also calls Him a
Spirit, and a spirit, He says, has neither flesh nor bones. The
Holy Ghost, who manifested Himself upon Christ in the form of a
dove, and upon the apostles in the form of tongues of fire, and
sat upon each of then, Him she could also not understand to be
a person. But the Son, who became man for us, was visible,
palpable and passive, walked much among the Jews, did many
signs, suffered hunger and thirst, wept, etc., Him she could
indeed confess to be a person. I John 4:9; Isa. 66:1; John
4:24; Luke 24:39; Matt. 3:16; Acts 2:3; Matt. 17:12; 11:5;
21:19; John 19:28; Luke 19:41.</p>

<p>In the eighth place they asked her, whether one might not
swear, or take an oath, before the authorities, to defend
justice and establish the truth, but she esteemed Christ's
commandment more than that of men; for He teaches, "I say unto
you, Swear not at all; neither by heaven; for it is God's
throne: nor by the earth; for it is his footstool: neither by
Jerusalem; for it is the city of the great King. Neither shalt
thou swear by thy head, because thou canst not make one hair
white or black. But let your communication be, Yea, yea; Nay,
nay: for whatsoever is more than these cometh of evil." Matt.
5:34-37.</p>

<p>In the ninth place it was told her that good works did
avail, also for them that had died. But she asserted that
neither soul-masses, obsequies, pilgrimages, the burning of
tapers, nor anything else could help or benefit the dead; for
the Scripture says, "If the tree fall toward the south, or
toward the north, in the place where the tree falleth, there it
shall be." Eccl. 11:3. Christ also tells of ten virgins, of
whom the five who had wisely kept theirlamps burning, and
provided their vessels with oil, went in with Him; but the
others, who had neglected their time, had to remain without.
Even as the angel said, that hereafter time shall be no longer.
Rev. 10:6.</p>

<p>In the tenth place she was asked whether the saints had not
ascended up to heaven. But she confessed that no one has
ascended up to heaven, but Christ our Protector and Saviour,
not even Mary His mother; but that they all rest in the hand of
God, waiting for the judgment of the last day. John 3:13; Acts
1:10; W isd. 3:1. As the Scripture says, that the hour is
coming, in the which all that are in the graves shall hear the
voice of God, and they that have done good shall enter in unto
life eternal, but the ungodly into eternal damnation. John
5:28, 29. The resurrection is for both the just and the unjust,
as Paul says: We must all appear before the judgment seat of
the Lord, to be rewarded according to our works. Acts 24:15; II
Cor. 5:10. We also read of the souls of the righteous that are
under the altar, and wait till the number of their brethren
shall be fulfilled. Rev. 6:9, 11.</p>

<p>After she had thus been most rigidly examined, they sought
through the learned of this world to instruct her for the
purpose of causing her to recant; but when neither entreaties
or threats could move her, but she declared herself willing
rather to die, than to apostatize, she had to go upon the rack
stripped of everything but an apron. There she was severely
racked, with a stick in her mouth, so that her teeth broke in
pieces; but she would not recant, nor betray any of her fellow
members. And when she requested that the torture be
discontinued, the burgomaster said, that she should recant and
confess. But God kept her lips, and helped her so that she was
released from the torture; for she would rather with old
Eleazar die this temporal death, than by denying Christ forfeit
His eternal kingdom. Divers times they threatened her with
death, but this could not intimidate her. Sometimes she feared
that, because she was very sad, she might not be able to
refrain from weeping when she should be led to death; hence she
turned to God in prayer, who did not leave her prayer unheard,
for when she received the intelligence, that she should have to
die, her heart was especially filled with joy and good cheer.
On the morning when she was to die, the bailiff asked her,
whether she had not yet considered the matter. But she said, "He that would obtain the precious prize that is set before
us, must run without ceasing." I Cor. 9:24. She was then
brought into court, and sentenced to death. In her sentence the
foregoing ten articles were read to her charge, and that she
therefore, and because of her obstinacy, should be burned as a
heretic. This did not make her despondent, but she thanked the
Lord, and wished them grace from God, that they might turn from
idolatry to the true worship of God. I Thess. 1:9.</p>

<p>When she came out and went forth to death, she</p>

</div><div id="966"> 

<p>said to the people, "Go, buy Testaments, and read therein,
that you may find why I am sentenced to death, and have to
die." Thereupon the executioner, greatly incensed, and
threatening to strike her, told her to be silent, and without
saying much more she went into the hut, where the executioner
hastened his work, and commending her spirit into the hands of
God, she was burned, on the eve of Epiphany 1573, and prepared
herself to go forth with the wise virgins, to meet the
Bridegroom.</p>

<p>The burgomaster, or president of the court, at Meenen, named
Jan de Drijver, who had pronounced the sentence on Pierijntgen,
was afterwards severely punished of God; his flesh decayed, so
that in consequence of it one ear dropped from his head, and he
died a most miserable death.</p>

<h2>MICHIEL VAN BRUYSSEL, AND BARBERKEN HIS<br />
WIFE, A. D. 1573</h2> 

<p>About the year 1573, there were imprisoned for the testimony
of Jesus, at Ghent, in Flanders, Michiel van Bruyssel and
Barberken his wife. Because they were not of the world, but had
by God been chosen out of the world, therefore the world, which
only loves its own, hated, persecuted and oppressed them. But
they, as wise builders, had built their foundation upon the
cornerstone Christ Jesus, who was able to keep their treasure
until the day of their redemption. Thus they, after manifold
temptations and trials of their faith, were, by the blinded,
God-opposing papists, put to death, not on account of any evil
deed, but only for the obedience of the truth of Jesus Christ.
Michiel van Bruyssel was burned in the Friday Market, and
Barberken his wife was beheaded with the sword, in the count's
castle. And thus they remained faithful unto death to their
Redeemer and Saviour; hence they shall receive an eternal and
glorious kingdom, and a beautiful crown, from the hand of the
Lord, which no one shall be able to take away from them.</p>

<h2>JAN VAN ACKEREN, A. D. 1573</h2> 

<p>After manifold persecution, murdering and burning of the
Christians, there also fell into the hands of the tyrants, in
the city of Antwerp a valiant hero and soldier of Jesus Christ,
named Jan van Ackeren born near Ypres. The sole cause of his
apprehension was, that he in accordance with the counsel of
God, had separated from the wicked world and all her false
worship militating against the Word of God and had yielded his
body and spirit under the banner and obedience of Christ. And
as the light does not unite and mingle with darkness; but is
hated and persecuted by the latter, therefore the rulers of
darkness examined and tried said sheep of Christ, with severe
imprisonment and many sore tortures. And as he could by no
means be brought to apostatize, since he was founded upon the
Rock he was put to death by fire at said place, suffering it
with great steadfastness. And thus he testifiedand confirmed
the belief of the truth with his death and blood, and trod the
wine press of suffering with Christ. Hence he was not rejected
as a bastard, but much rather, through grace, acknowledged and
received as an acceptable son by Christ, into his eternal
inheritance, where he with all God's chosen, shall live and
reign forever and ever.</p>

<p>This friend of Christ sent several letters from his prison,
but they did not come to our hands.</p>

<h2>G. KLEERMAECKER, WITH SIJNTGEN VAN ROUS<br />
SELARE AND MAEYKEN GOSENS, PUT TO<br />
DEATH FOR THE TRUTH, AT ANTWERP,<br />
A. D. 1573</h2> 

<p class="c25">A letter from G. Kleeymaecker, imprisoned at Antwerp 
with Sijntgen van Rousselare, wife of Jeronymus, where they laid down their lives for the truth</p>

<p>The abundant grace of God, the great love and mercy of His
Son, and the power, operation and illumination of the Holy
Ghost, this, my very dear and beloved sister in the Lord, I
wish you as a cordial and affectionate greeting, whereby we,
unworthy ones, are born anew of God, to serve the Lord in
righteousness and holiness, to the praise of the Lord and to
the salvation of our souls. Hereunto fit, strengthen and
confirm us, the Lord, the Father of all mercy, to whom alone be
praise, glory, and honor, forever and ever. Amen.</p>

<p>After this salutation, my very dear and beloved sister in
the Lord, I inform you, that I am, the Lord be praised forever,
still tolerably well according to the flesh, and also as
regards the mind; and I trust by the grace of God to go with
our true Captain, Joshua to the promised land (which has been
promised us unworthy ones out of grace, and shown us through
faith) hoping and trusting by the grace of God to pass unharmed
over Jordan; yet I would from the depth of my heart, that my
mind were more valiant for it.</p>

<p>Further, my very dear and beloved sister, I inform you, that
at the visit my heart was greatly rejoiced by you, because I
saw your great joy and gladness in the Lord, your complete
self-renunciation, and the resignation of your heart and mind,
in the Lord, for which we cannot thank and praise the Lord
enough, that He has given you such a treasure in earthen
vessels, that you do not want to forsake the Lord, for neither
life nor death, nor for any torment which the tyrants might
inflict upon you my very dear and beloved sister in the Lord.
The Lord, the God of all grace, strengthen and confirm you unto
the end, and fulfill all the good pleasure of His goodness in
you, and the work of faith with power, that the name of our
dear Lord Jesus Christ may be glorified in you, and that you
may fight the good fight of faith; and lay hold on eternal
life, whereunto we are called, if we hold the beginning of the
Christian life steadfast unto the end. II Thess.1:11,12; I Tim.
6:12; Heb. 3:14. For, dear sister in the Lord, if we
properly</p>

</div><div id="967"> 

<p>consider the life of Christ, we find nothing but
tribulation, suffering and distress. He who was the Lord of
lords, for our sakes left His Father's kingdom; He came into
the world, to call our guilt upon Him, and paid the debt with
His bitter suffering and death on the tree of the cross,
leaving us in all things an example, as the apostle says, that
we should follow His steps, who did no sin, neither was guile
found in His mouth; who when He was reviled, reviled not again;
when He suffered He threatened not; but committed. Himself to
Him that judgeth righteously: who His own self bare our sins in
His own body on the tree, that we, being dead to sins, should
live unto righteousness; by whose stripes ye were healed. For
ye were as sheep going astray; but are now returned unto the
Shepherd and Bishop of your souls. And in another place the
apostle says, "Consider him that endured such contradiction of
sinners against himself, lest ye be wearied and faint in your
minds." Heb. 12:3. And thus also the prophet utters his
complaint for him saying, "I am a worm, and no man; a reproach
of men, and despised of the people. All they that see me laugh
me to scorn: they shoot out the lip, they shake the head." Ps.
22:6, 7. In still another place Isaiah says, "He hath no form
nor comeliness; and when we see him, there is no beauty that we
should desire him. He is despised and rejected of men; a man of
sorrows, and acquainted with grief: and we hid, as it were, our
faces from him . . . . He was oppressed and he was afflicted,
yet he opened not his mouth: he is brought as a lamb to the
slaughter, and as a sheep before her shearers is dumb, so he
opened not his mouth." Isa. 53:2, 3, 7. Besides this, my much
beloved sister in the Lord, consider Christ's entire life how
He begun, lived, and, ended it; you will find nothing but
suffering, humiliation, misery and contempt, which He suffered
for our sakes in humility, so that the apostle says of the
Lord, that in the days of His flesh He offered up prayers and
supplications with strong crying and tears unto God who was
able to save Him from death, and was heard because He honored
God. Heb. 5:7. Hence, my dear sister in the Lord, this
beginning of the Christian life must abide with us unto the
end, as said before, and we shall then also be partakers of
Him, and with all God's children inherit His kingdom through
grace, for which reason He went hence to prepare us a place
there, even as He says, "I go to your and my Father, to prepare
a place for you; and if I go, I will come again, and receive
you unto myself; that where I am, there ye may be also," John
20:17; 14:3. Therefore, my dear sister in the Lord, though our
God does now hide His face from us for a little while, yet will
He gather us again with everlasting kindness, as the prophet
says, "I will lead you into mine house, and give you a place
within my walls, and a name better than of sons and of
daughters; yea, I will give you an everlasting name, that shall
not be cut off. Yea, he will lay our stones with fair colors,
and lay our foundations with sapphires, and will make our
windows of crystal and our gates of carbuncles." Isa. 54:7, 8;
56:5; 54:11, 12."Yea, there is a city built," says John,"of
pure gold, where, my very dear sister in the Lord, you shall
see the King in his beauty, whose head is as the finest gold,
and his locks are curled and black as a raven; his eyes are as
the eyes of doves; his cheeks are as growing beds of spices of
the apothecary; his hands are as gold rings set with
turquoises, his body is as pure ivory. His legs are as pillars
of marble set upon sockets of gold; his mouth is sweet, and his
word is lovely." Rev. 21:18; Cant. 5:11-16. In short, we shall
find more there, than it is possible to tell us or to
describe.</p>

<p>See, my dear sister in the Lord, suich as our Friend and
Bridegroom; hence rejoice, you betrothed of the Lord, for He
that has chosen you from among many thousands is fairer than
all the children of men.</p>

<p>Therefore, my dear sister in the Lord, adorn yourself with
the fine linen of righteousness (Revelation 19:8) in honor of
your Bridegroom until the days of tribulation shall be at an
end, and the Lord shall turn again the captivity of Zion, and
wipe away all tears from your eyes, and make perfect our joy,
so that for our mourning and sighing we shall sing as in the
night of a glorious feast, and shall, with the hundred and
forty-four thousand virgins, that were redeemed from the earth,
stand before the throne of God, having the name of our God
written in our foreheads, having harps in our hands, and
singing a new song. Rev. 7:4; 14:1-4.</p>

<p>Behold, dear sister, this our enemies shall see and be
confounded, who now say to us, "Where is your God?" Our eyes
shall then behold them trodden down as mire in the streets, and
be ashes under the feet of the righteous. Mal. 4:3. Hence, dear
sister in the Lord, let us be sincere in love, and obtain the
victory in the Christian's conflict; to him that overcometh He
will give to eat of the tree of life, which is in the midst of
the paradise of God. Rev. 2:7. This grant us the only wise God,
the Father of grace and mercy, who alone has power in heaven
and on earth, that we, justified through His grace, may become
heirs of eternal life. Unto Him that is able to do exceeding
abundantly above all that we can ask or think, to Him alone be
praise, glory and honor, forever and ever. Amen. Ephesians
3:20, 21.</p>

<p>Faithful is He, who also will do it, according to His
promise; for I am God, He says by the prophet Malachi, and
change not, namely, in His promises. I Thess. 5:24; Mal.
3:6.</p>

<p>Herewith, my very dear and beloved sister in the Lord, I
will commend you to the Lord, and to the rich Word of His
grace. Adieu, adieu, if we should see each other's face no more
in this world, yet I hope that we shall see each other in
eternity with our God, where parting will be no more. Once
more, adieu, and take my simple letter in good part, this I
humbly pray: and if I have in anything</p>

</div><div id="968"> 

<p>written too little or too much, I beg you to excuse me for
it. Herewith I cordially salute you and also my wife cordially
greets you with the peace of the Lord; and Sanderijntgen, and
another maiden from Zealand, named Magdaleentgen, also greet
you most cordially. I ask you very kindly, my dear sister, let
me have a letter from you, for this will be very welcome to me
and more agreeable than I can write you. Farewell.</p>

<p>By me your weak brother and servant, to the utmost of my
ability.</p>

<p class="c5">G. KLEERMAECKER, V. S. B.</p>

<h2>A LETTER FROM SIJNTGEN VAN ROUSSELARE</h2>

<p><i>Grace and peace.</i> Written at Antwerp, in prison, I,
Sijntgen, who am unworthy, am imprisoned for the testimony of
the Lord, and daily expecting my sentence; the Lord grant us,
that we may offer up our sacrifice to His praise and glory; and
to the salvation of our souls. Amen.</p>

<p>The great grace and mercy of God the Father, and the great
love of the Son, and the power of the Holy Ghost, confirm you,
my very dear sister in the Lord, and us, unto the end, that we
may be found worthy in the day of the Lord, through grace to
receive the beautiful promises, when the Lord shall say, "Come,
ye blessed of my Father, inherit the kingdom prepared for you
from the foundation of the world." Oh, what great joy will then
be prepared for us, if we only hold the beginning of the
Christian life steadfast unto the end; hereunto confirm us the
God of Abraham, the God of Isaac, and the God of Jacob, whose
power is great, even as the prophet declares, that with His
three fingers He encircles the whole earth; and unto His name
every knee must bow in heaven and earth, and every tongue must
praise Him; the Lord of hosts is His name, the Lord Sabaoth,
the Mighty One in Israel, for whose name we are imprisoned
here; to Him alone be praise and glory, forever and ever. Amen.
Isa. 40:12; 45:23; 54:5.</p>

<p>For He has created and made heaven and earth out of nothing.
This same bleeding, naked, crucified Christ I wish you, my very
dear sister in the Lord, as an affectionate and Christian
greeting; may He keep and comfort you in all affliction that
may come upon you and us for His name. After all loving and
Christian salutation, I inform you, my dear lamb and sister in
the Lord, that my mind is still determined (eternal praise and
glory to the Lord for His grace) as it was when I unworthily
bowed my knees before the Lord, thereby showing that I desired
to obey Him in every thing, in affliction as well as in joy,
even as the apostle also admonishes us, that it is given unto
us not only to believe in Christ, but also to suffer for Him. O
my dear sister in the Lord, the servant is not above his Lord,
nor the disciple above his master, and Christ has also told
us, "The world shall rejoice, and ye shall be sorrowful, but
your sorrow shall be turned into joy." And further, "Ye
shallweep and lament, but the world shall rejoice, but be of
good cheer; I have overcome the world." John 16:20, 33. And our
faith is the victory that overcometh the world, by which we
must overcome princes and magistrates, through the grace of the
Lord. I John 5:4. O my dear sister in the Lord, it is true, we
are here as sheep for the slaughter; but in all these things we
are more than conquerors through Him that loved us, as the
apostle says, "Who shall separate us from the love which is in Christ
Jesus our Lord? Shall tribulation, or distress, or persecution,
or peril, or sword? As is written." Rom. 8:35.</p>

<p>O my dear lamb, He is such a faithful King whom we serve; He
will not forsake us but assist us in water, sword and fire: for
He says by the prophet Isaiah, "Though a mother should forsake
her own child, yet will I not forsake thee, but keep thee as
the apple of mine eye." Isa. 49:15; Zech. 2:8. O my dear
sister, this is for us a glorious comfort in our present
tribulation, and distress, which is temporal and light, says
the apostle, and worketh for us a far more exceeding and
eternal weight of glory, while we look not at the things which
are temporal, but at the things which are eternal; for eye hath
not seen, nor ear heard, neither hath it entered into the heart
of man, the things that God hath prepared for them that love
Him. II Cor. 4:17, 18; I Cor. 2:9. O my dear siser in the Lord,
let us choose much rather to suffer affliction with the
children of God, than to enjoy the pleasures of sin for a
season, and let us esteem the reproach of Christ great riches,
and with the prophet David, much rather go into the holy
sanctuary of the Lord, than in the path of the ungodly, for
though he flourishes here, he must perish, for the wise man
says that the hope of the ungodly is like dried thistledown.
Wisd. 5:14. But we, dear sister in the Lord, have a sure hope;
though here in the sight of the unwise we seem to die, we know
that we shall live forever, for it is written: They that here
sow in tears shall reap with everlasting joy and gladness, and
bring their sheaves into God's garner. Wisd. 3:2; Ps. 126:5, 6.
O my dear sister in the Lord, when this mortal shall put on
immortality, how gloriously we shall then be crowned with
glorious joy, for then our joy shall not be taken from us. I
Cor. 15:53; II Esd. 2:45. O my dear lamb and sister in the
Lord, let us freely trust in our King, for His promises will
not fail, for He will not put us off, as do these carnal lords,
all of which passes away, but He will out of grace give us life
eternal.</p>

<p>O my sister in the Lord, my desire is, to go and rest under
the altar, with all my dear brethren and sisters who freely
delivered up their lives unto the death, and are resting under
the altar; I hope that we shall soon come to them, for we are
of good courage here, by the grace of the Lord, to take, with
Caleb and Joshua, the promised land. Though our enemies are
many, we hope to devour them like bread, for we have overcome
nearly all our en-</p>

</div><div id="969"> 

<p>emies, but now we have before us the greatest or last enemy,
which is death, but we have a strong comfort, which is the God
of Jacob, who gives us strength when the need is greatest;
though the billows then come against us, we hope as David says,
by our God to leap over a wall, and with Paul to say, "I can do
all things through Christ, which strengtheneth me;" and we hope
thus to press through, even as Christ says: Strive to enter in
at straight gate, for narrow is the way which leadeth unto
eternal life. And Christ further says that the kingdom of
heaven suffereth violence, and the violent take it by force.
Num. 14:9; I Cor. 15:26; Ps. 18:29; Phil. 4:13; Luke 13:24;
Matthew 7:14; 11:12.</p>

<p>O my dear sister in the Lord, when flesh and blood must
remain on the posts and stakes, then is the time of the
severest conflict, for Satan also well knew to say this, when
he tempted God-fearing job. Job 2:4, 5. When flesh and blood
are touched, then the true faith is tried as gold in the
furnace and then we must strive lawfully, to obtain through
grace, the crown of eternal life, for it is written</p>

<p>Because thou hast kept the word of my patience, I also will
keep thee from the hour of temptation. And I will not blot out
his name out of the book of life. He that overcometh, the same
shall be clothed in white raiment, and I will make him a pillar
in the temple of my God, and I will lead him to the fountain of
living water. I Pet. 1:7; II Tim. 2:5; I Cor. 9:25; Rev. 3:10,
5, 12. O my dear sister in the Lord, what glorious promises are
given us, if we only endure steadfast unto the end. To this
end, may the Lord grant us and you His grace, that we may help
sing the new song in Zion, with the hundred and forty-four
thousand, which were not defiled with women: for they are
virgins, because they did not commit whoredom with the
daughters of Babylon. Rev. 14:3, 4. Herewith I will commend
you, my dear sister, to the Lord and to the Word of His grace,
which is able to keep you and us unto eternal life. And I
herewith take leave from you, and bid you adieu on this earth,
till we meet where parting will be no more, where the streets
are of pure gold, and the gates of pearls and precious stones.
Rev. 21. Adieu, adieu, my dear sister in the Lord. Written by
me, Sijntgen van Rousselare wife of Jeronymus, your weak sister
in the Lord; take my simple letter in good part, since it has
been written out of true love; for my gift is not very great.
And greet with the peace of the Lord, in my name your people
where you live and all dear friends, known and unknown,
especially your brother and sister Passchier my familiar
acquaintances. My fellow prisoners greet your love cordially
with the peace of the Lord. Pray the Lord heartily for us; we
will most gladly do the same for you according to our weak
ability. And let us always persevere steadfastly, that no one
may take our crown, but that we may with the wise virgins enter
into joyful rest. Amen.</p>

<p>SIJNTGEN VAN ROUSSELARE.</p>

<h2>FRANCOYS VAN LEUVEN, HANSKEN VAN OUDEN<br />
AERDEN AND GRIETGEN VAN SLUYS, IN THE<br />
YEAR 1573</h2> 

<p>In, the year 1573, there were put to death at Ghet in
Flanders, for the genuine faith of the truth, and for following
Christ, Francoys van Leuven (the son of Willem van Leuven,
separately mentioned in this book), the uncle of Jan Doom;
Hansken van Oudenaerden, born at Geertsberge; and Grietgen van
Sluys, born at Tielt, in Guelderland. These were at said place,
by the envious and bloodthirsty generation of Cain, and not of
Judah, put to death most ignominiously, as not worthy to be
tolerated upon the earth, not on account of any misdeed, but
only because they, according to the command of the eternal God,
had separated from this corrupt world, which lies in inhuman
wickedness, and sought, according to their weak ability, to
follow Christ in the regeneration; and as the light can have no
fellowship with darkness, this tyranny was inflicted upon them
by the rulers of darkness, because they held the genuine faith
of the truth, and thus they became partakers of the sufferings
of Christ, wherefore they shall also with Christ, when His
glory shall be revealed, receive great joy and gladness, and
enjoy the same forever. I Peter. 4:13.</p>

<h2>LIPPIJNTGEN STAYAERTS, SIJNTGEN BARNINGE, OR<br />
LAME SIJNTGEN, A. D. 1573</h2> 

<p>In the same year there were imprisoned at Ghent, in
Flanders, for the truth of the holy Gospel, Lippijntgen
Stayaerts, a native of Ghent; and Sijntgen Barninge, called
Lame Sijntgen, born at Kortrijck in Flanders. As these had also
betaken themselves into the way of righteousness, under the
banner of their only and eternal Shepherd Christ Jesus, the
ministers of antichrist inflicted upon them the same treatment
which their Captain Himself had met with, and which He had also
foretold and promised His followers: not to be loved and highly
esteemed by the world but the very opposite, namely, hatred,
tribulation, crosses, persecution and death. Thus it happened,
after manifold trials and temptations which they suffered for
Christ's sake, that they were sentenced to death by the rulers
of darkness, and beheaded with the sword in the court's castle.
And as Sijntgen was lame, she was carried upon the scaffold in
a chair, and as she held up her folded hands rather high, a
brother (named Natanael de Tollenaer, a brother of Joost de
Tollenaer) cried, "Lamb, look out for your bands;" and so they
also cut off her two thumbs. Thus they did not love their lives
unto death, but willingly delivered up their earthly house for
the heavenly; hence there is prepared for them a building of
God, a house which, in unspeakable glory, shall endure forever
in heaven. II Corinthians 5:1.</p>

</div><div id="970"> <br />

<h1>JACOB VAN DEN WEGE, A. D. 1573</h1> 

<p>This Jacob van den Wege, born at Ronse, in Flanders, was a
nephew of Mr. Claes, who was a colleague of the Dean of Ronse,
in his time, probably, the most prominent and zealous
inquisitor and persecutor of the Christians in that country. As
Jacob had come to the knowledge of the truth, and followed it
with ardent love, he was on this account banished from all the
dominions of the king of Spain, and had thus, as a fugitive,
for more than seven years to subsist very meagerly, gaining a
livelihood, and providing bread for his wife and children, by
making chests or trunks. Much of the time he abode secretly
with good friends, here and there in Flanders, as at Meenen,
Halewijn and Wervick, whence, on account of the severe
persecution under the Duke of Alva, and because he was also an
exile, he went to work in a shop at Rijssel, which was three
leagues from the former place.</p>

<p>Having afterwards secretly taken up his residence, with wife
and children, at Ghent, it happened at a certain time, that he
went to the house of one Christoffel van Leuven, a minister of
the Word of God, at the very time that the authorities of Ghent
had sent to apprehend this Christoflel, and not finding him,
they laid hands upon Jacob, taking him along and putting him
into severe confinement, in a tower, guarded, and secured with
seven doors. There, lying in great fear and distress, he
earnestly called upon the Lord his God, in prayer, in spirit
and in truth, that He would strengthen him therein, and
graciously grant him help, of which he was then in great need,
seeing many strong enemies assailed him; for Satan, the envier
of all that is good, exerted great power to make him apostatize
from the Lord his God, not resting day or night, but very
subtly going about him to lead his soul astray. The emissaries
of Satan also approached him very craftily, with plausible
speeches, as though they sought to comfort and enlighten him;
but if he had listened to them, they would have murdered his
soul, from which God preserved him. His wife and children also
were to him a source of great temptation, for it was very hard
for him to leave them, but for the Lord's sake it had to be
done.</p>

<p>After he had been imprisoned for a time and valiantly
withstood many entreaties and torments, he was finally publicly
burned, at Ghent, for living in accordance with the genuine
truth, about three years after his brother Hans had been burned
there for following Christ, as related before.</p>

<p>We have added here the letters of this Jacob van den Wege,
which have come into our hands, that the reader from them may
see in what faith he stood and died.</p>

<h2>A LETTER FROM JACOB VAN DEN WEGE, WRITTEN<br />
TO HIS WIFE, IN THE BEGINNING OF HIS IM<br />
PRISONMENT, AT GHENT, IN THE HUYS<br />
TER LUCHT, AT THE END OF THE<br />
MEULENAERS STREET</h2> 

<p>O my most beloved under the sun, and my three children, who
make my heart so faint that I scarcely know what I have in
myself, for when I think of you, I am so sorely crushed with
anguish in the press of affliction, that my eyes run over with
tears, so that I only with difficulty can quiet myself.</p>

<p>O my dear wife, and my three lambs, whom I love, how strong
is love? how shall I be able to write you a parting letter? for
the waters of affliction fill my eyes, and this through my
infirmity, misery and great weakness.</p>

<p>O my wife, I confess here before you and before all that
read this, that I have written you here, far too feebly and
miserably; neverthelees, the great anxiety and deep affliction,
which rises from my strong love for you four, impelled me to
it. But I hope that you will accept it from me for the sake of
the truth; and, my dear wife, please hear my answer in regard
to what you had asked me, as to what advice I would give you
concerning the traveling. I say, I give you no advice with
regard to it, since I do not know an opportunity at present;
but I would most urgently entreat you, that, if it be possible
for you to gain some sort of a livelihood here, that you remain
until the matter is decided with me one way or the other, and
this for no other reason, but that I might still hear from you
now and then, for a greeting from you is more precious to me
than much silver or gold. And, my wife, please know, that
Kalleken Meere, who is imprisoned with me, has made a bequest,
namely, a shift, a necklace, a night neckerchief, and a
hairlace; and Hijntgen also gives you a night neckerchief, a
neck-cloth, and her best apron. This they give to you for their
remembrance and testament; after their death it is yours, and
they cordially greet you with the peace of the Lord. Amen.</p>

<p>Written in my bonds, by me, your dear husband and brother in
the Lord.</p>

<p>JACOB VAN DEN WEGE.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER LETTER FROM JACOB VAN DEN WEGE,<br />
TO HIS WIFE, AND HIS BRETHREN AND SISTERS</h2> 

<p class="c3">Glory to God in the highest, and on earth peace,
good will toward men. Lu 2:14.</p>

<p>I, Jacob van den Wege, imprisoned for the invincible truth,
wish my dear in God beloved wife and sister in the Lord, and my
three innocent little children; and further all brethren and
sisters, and all my dear friends in the Lord, grace, peace,
mercy, much true Christian wisdom and prudence, an
understanding heart, a steadfast mind in the truth, a strong
faith, a living hope, a good, peaceful conscience toward God
and man, and an unblamable, holy conversation in all humility,
meekness, kindness and unity, and all this in the true fear
of</p>

</div><div id="971"> 

<p>God bound with the bond of love. This I wish you all from
God the heavenly Father, through Jesus Christ His eternal,
only, true Son, our Lord, together with the mighty power of the
Holy Ghost, as a cordial and affectionate greeting. Amen.</p>

<p>After my simple, cordial salutation, my beloved wife, and
all brethren and sisters, and further all my friends in the
Lord, let me please inform you, that it is still well with me,
and I am unchanged in the faith and knowledge of God, even as I
was when I bowed my knees before the Most High, so I am minded;
and still stand through the grace of God, and the power of
Christ, which strengthens me, to live or die with Christ in
this same faith and truth. The Almighty Lord, who is able so to
strengthen and confirm him that is miserable, weak, and without
strength here in this conflict, to Him be praise, thanks,
glory, and honor forever and ever, and this for all His great
benefits which He has so abundantly shown me. So I trust that
it is also very well with you, on which account I rejoiced, and
thank God the Most High, for all His great goodness that He has
shown you, and all this through His great mercy and love; and I
pray the same Almighty Lord and God of grace, to bless you all,
and to fill you with all knowledge and spiritual wisdom and
understanding, that you may walk worthily and fruitfully all
the days of your life in holiness and righteousness, and
receive the end of your faith, even the salvation of your
souls.</p>

<p>Let me further, please, tell my dear friends the reason why
I have been so backward in writing, when you have so many times
requested of me, that I should write to you. Hence I tell you,
that I hardly dare write anything, and this because it is such
a perilous time, so that people sometimes understand and
construe a letter as they will, and not as the writer has meant
it. Even as I have only too much known this to be the case, and
it has even happened to me, in my simple writing. Not that I
mean that I am above criticism; God forbid! but I say that some
people find fault not only with the letters of simple
prisoners, but sometimes also with the holy Scripture; and
since I also know myself far too simple and ignorant, to write
anything profitable for your exhortation, therefore I have
always refused them that requested it of me, and have thus far
put it off. And were it not for my innocent little children,
who today understand neither good nor evil, I should not have
written much yet; but they constrain me to write now, in order
that when they come to the years of understanding through the
grace of God, and I shall then have been taken from them, the
same might then teach them of my faith, and instruct them in
righteousness and the knowledge of God, in the fear of the
Lord, and in all obedience. And since I must walk the way, and
obey the vocation in which I am called, and I can then not
admonish them with my lips, I write and leave them this much
for a treasure and testament; for gold or silver I cannot give
them, but such as God has given me, which is little, but yet
more thanI am worthy of; this I leave them for an exhortation,
that they may also know most assuredly and certainly by my own
writing, in what doctrine and faith I died, and that I did not
suffer for any misdeed or wickedness, or heresy, as one that
follows his own mind and purpose (though I am called a heretic
by this evil generation, who imagine that they are pure, and
are yet not washed from their filth; but their railing is no
proof, and their calumny is untruth); for I well know and am
sure that all who follow their own mind and purpose do not keep
God's commandments: for the Scriptures teach us, that we must
be spiritually minded, as Jesus Christ was, that we must be
obedient and deny ourselves, yea, utterly and completely
renounce our own will, and bow ourselves under the Word and the
mighty hand of God, which Word is like a fire, and like a
hammer that breaketh the rock in pieces, yea, as a two-edged
sword, which shall judge men in the last day. Rom. 8:6;
Philippians 2:5; Matt. 16:24; 6:10; I Pet. 5:6; Jere, miah
23:29; Rev. 1:16; John 12:48. Hence I say that I have submitted
myself, to obey the same with all my power and ability, to
suffer myself to be instructed by it, to believe what the
Scriptures say; for I believe all that is written in the law
and the prophets, both in the Old and the New Testaments; and
have hope toward God, for which the prophets themselves waited,
namely, that there shall be a resurrection of the dead, both of
the just and unjust; and herein do I exercise myself, always to
have a conscience void of offense toward God and toward men
(Acts 24:14-16); thus my faith which God has given me, is as
the Word of God, and like the Scriptures, as here briefly
follows</p>

<p>In the first place, I believe and confess one only, eternal,
Almighty God the Father, of whom are all things. Him I confess
to be a living God, who created and made heaven, earth, the
sea, and all that in them is, even as both the Old and New
Testaments highly extol and worship Him in His worthiness; as
an invisible and immortal God, a God of gods, a Lord above all
lords, a great God, mighty and most terrible, who sits upon His
throne, a Lord unto whom there is none like, for He is higher
than the heavens, deeper than hell, longer than the earth, and
wider than the sea, as He Himself by the prophet says, "The
heaven is my throne, and the earth is my footstool." Rightly
has Jeremiah said, "Thou great and mighty God, the Lord of
hosts, is thy name; great in counsel, and mighty in work. For
behold, the heaven and heaven of heavens can not contain him."
Hence I also say, that a creature cannot comprehend the
Creator, but I confess Him to be a holy, true, gracious,
merciful, but also a severe, righteous and just God, before
whom alone we must tremble and fear, fall down and worship, and
love and obey Him; who shall render unto every one according to
His works, whether they be good or bad, either salvation or
damnation. Mark 12:29; Isa. 40:28; Gen. 17:1; I Cor. 8:6; Gen.
1; John 1:18; I Tim. 6:16; Deut.</p>

</div><div id="972"> 

<p>10:17; Ps. 139:8; Isa. 66:1; Jer. 32:19; I Kings 8:27; Lev.
19:2; Ps. 7:11; Matt. 4:10; II Cor. 5:10.</p>

<p>In the second place, I confess and believe in Jesus Christ,
God's only, own, true Son, our Lord, who was with the Father
from the beginning and from everlasting, whom the Father has
imbued with His real presence, and expressly set forth the same
in Him, as is everywhere fundamentally contained and declared
in the Scriptures; so that He is the image of the eternal
light, the immaculate reflection of the divine glory, and the
likeness or image of His being. So that when He was in the form
of God, He was glorified as God, yea, the wisdom and Word of
God Himself, in whom alone was life, the firstborn of every
creature, invisible, impassable, and immortal, through whom all
things were created and made; He is before all, and all is in
Him, so that He is Alpha and Omega, the beginning and the
ending, the first and the last, who is, and who was, and who is
to come; even thus do I confess the Son of God in His divinity
as the eternal true Son of God, true God with the Father, equal
with Him in glory, brightness, power, will, and providence.
John 3:16; Rom. 8:32; Mic. 5:2; Col. 1:15; II Cor. 4:4; Phil
2:6; John 1:4; Col. 1.:15; Rev. 1:8, 17; John 17:21.</p>

<p>But when the man Adam, by transgressing the commandment, had
sinned, and through sin, because of God's strict justice, was,
with all his posterity, under the sentence of eternal death,
God, kindled with compassion and fervent love, comforted the
miserable, sorrowful Adam and promised to man His only Son, or
eternal Word; by which all things were made, yea, Adam himself
having first been created after His own likeness; He promised
him, that he should be redeemed and saved by that same Word.
This promise God also made for consolation, to many ancient
fathers, as patriarchs, prophets and servants of God, by
beautiful figures and shadows, for a Redeemer and Saviour of
the world, especially of those that believe. When the time and
all promises were fulfilled, God sent His Son, born of a woman
named Mary, who was espoused to a man named Joseph, of the
house of David. This virgin conceived of the Holy Ghost, even
as God had foreordained, and spoke by Isaiah saying"Behold, a
virgin shall conceive, and bear a son." Yes, she conceived of
the Holy Ghost, and through the power of the Most High it
became flesh in her, that is man, like unto us in all things,
sin excepted. Namely, He that was previously invisible, became
visible; He that was immortal, became mortal; and He that
enjoyed great riches of glory, was glorified as God, yea, was
Himself true God, the same forsook His riches, glory and
brightness for a little while, and became like unto other men,
and was found in fashion as a man: so that He was both true God
and man, and was put under the law to redeem .them that were
under the law. Gen. 3; Romans 5:18; Jer. 33:14; Deut. 18:15; 1
Tim. 4:10; Gal.4:4; Matt. 1:25, 20; Isa. 7:14; John 1:14; Heb.
2:17; 5:2; John 17:5; Phil. 2:7, 8; Gal. 4:5.</p>

<p>Thus I confess with the apostle, that the eternal Word of
the Father, in whom alone was the light and the life of men,
became flesh, and dwelt upon the earth, and they beheld His
glory, the glory as of the only begotten Son of the Father,
full of grace and truth. Even as John testifies and says, "That
which was from the beginning, which we have heard, which we
have seen with our eyes, which we have looked upon, and our
hands have handled, of the Word of life; (for the life was
manifested, and we have seen it, and bear witness, and shew
unto you that eternal life, which was with the Father, and was
manifested unto us;) that w~ich we have seen and heard declare
we unto yo . And their testimony is true. Hence I confess from
these words, and other Scriptures, that Jesus Christ is come in
the flesh, who is over all, God blessed forever. Yea, God was
manifest in the flesh, justified in the Spirit, seen of angels,
preached unto the Gentiles, believed on in the world, received
up into glory." John 1:4, 14; I John 1:1-3; John 17:3; I John
4:2; Rom. 9:5; I Tim. 3:16.</p>

<p>Thus I believe that the true Messias did come, whom God had
promised to the believing fathers; for Abraham received the
true promised seed of Christ, in whom he and all the nations
upon earth are blessed. And this beautiful Morning Star rose
out of Jacob, and hath shined in our hearts, to give the light
of the knowledge of the glory of God in the face of Jesus
Christ. Judah received his Shiloh or Deliverer, and Moses his
Prophet. He was born in the city and of the lineage of David,
and called the Son of the Highest, yea, Israel and Judah beheld
themselves their Lord, King, Saviour, and God, and the arm of
the Lord reigned with power and He taught men, not only as a
true messenger, but also as a lover of life, and a faithful
steward, the Word of His Father, which He Himself had first
heard and seen from His Father, and which He proved and
confirmed with very many mighty signs, and ultimately sealed
with His precious blood, when He took upon Him our sin and
transgression, and had to restore that which He had not taken
away; who did no sin, neither was guile found in His mouth. Of
Him Isaiah says, "He hath borne our griefs, and carried our
sorrows, and he was wounded for our transgressions, he was
bruised for our iniquities: the chastisement of our peace was
upon him; and with his stripes we are healed." And He died for
us an ignominious death on the tree of the cross, when we were
yet enemies. He was buried, and raised again the third day
according to the Scriptures, for our justification, and after
His resurrection. as an almighty, victorious prince and
potentate in heaven and earth, He again taught His apostles, to
observe all things whatsoever He had commanded them. He then
ascended up on high, and sat down at the right hand of His
Father in heaven, far above all principality, and power, and
might, and dominion, and every name</p>

</div><div id="973"> 

<p>that is named, not only in this world, but also in that
which is to come. And He is our Mediator, Intercessor,
Advocate, Mercy-seat, Reconciler and High Priest, to make
reconciliation for the sins of the people; for in that He
Himself hath suffered being tempted, He is able to succor them
that are tempted, and can have compassion on our weakness,
wherefore He is able also to save them evermore that come unto
God by Him. John 4:25; Gen. 22:18; Gal. 3:16; Num. 24:17; I I
Cor. 4:6; Gen. 49:10; Deut. 18:15; Luke 2:4; John 12:49; Heb.
9; I Pet. 2:24; Ps. 69:4; I Pet. 2:22; I sa. 53:4, 5; Rom.
5:10; I Cor.15:4; Rom. 4:25; Matt. 28:18, 20; Eph. 1:20, 21;
Rom. 8:34; Heb. 2:17, 18; 5:2; 7:25.</p>

<p>In short, I believe and confess that Jesus Christ was sent
by God, and that God testified of Him, that He is His Son. Now,
he that believeth on the Son of God hath the witness in
himself: he that believeth not God hath made Him a liar;
because he believeth not the record that God gave of His Son.
And this is the record, that God hath given to us eternal life,
and this life is in His Son. He that hath the Son hath life;
and he that hath not the Son of God hath not the life, but the
wrath of God abideth on him. But I confess with John, that the
Son of God is come, and hath given us an understanding, that we
may know Him that is true, and we are' in Him that is true,
even in His Son Jesus Christ. This is the true God, and eternal
life. This is the first and the last, which was dead, and is
alive, and liveth now for evermore. Little children, keep
yourselves from idols, especially Adamitic creatures that are
highly esteemed by the world. Amen. Matt. 3:17; I John 5:10-12;
John 3:36; I John 5:20, 21; Rev. 1:11,18.</p>

<p>In the third place, I believe in the Holy Ghost, who is an
eternal Holy Spirit, the Spirit of truth, which Spirit I
confess to belong to both the Father and the Son, proceeding
from the Father through the Son. This Spirit God by the
prophets promised to pour out upon all flesh, which promise He
effectually fulfilled in the apostles, and in their time, and
the same is still poured out, and will be poured out, upon all
believing, regenerate children of God, for the consolation of
their consciences sorrowing after a godly manner and to seal
them unto the day of reconciliation, to distribute unto every
one spiritual gifts, according to His good pleasure. By the
same we cry, Abba Father; for the same Spirit beareth witness
with our spirit that we are the children of God, even as Paul
says, which is the earnest of our inheritance, until the
redemption of the purchased possession, unto the praise of His
glory; by which Spirit also the prophets spake from the
beginning of the world, and prophesied in a mystery the
treasures of wisdom and the knowledge of God, but now made
manifest by the appearing of our Saviour, Jesus Christ, who
hath abolished death, and hath brought life and immortality to
light through the Gospel, whereunto Paul was appointed a
preacher, and apostle, and teacher of the Gentiles, and all
this according to the commandment of the everlasting God, made
known to all nations for the obedience of faith. All these
things Paul and all holy men did and spake as they were moved
by the Holy Ghost. I therefore believe and confess the Father
as the Creator of all things, through His Son or Word; and
Jesus Christ as the Son of God, who redeemed us, and bought us
with His precious blood; and the Holy Ghost as a mighty
operation of the Most High, in all truly regenerated and
believing children of God. These three I confess to be one
only, eternal, almighty, living God, who have one purpose, one
counsel, one will, one work together in all eternity. As John
writes, that there are three that bear record in heaven, the
Father, the Word, and the Holy Ghost: and these three are one.
To this only, eternal, almighty, living God, who is
incomprehensible, unsearchable, and indescribable, alone be
praise, honor, wisdom, thanks, glory, power, and strength,
forever and ever. Amen. John 14:17; Isa. 44:3; Joel 2:28; Acts
2:3; Eph. 1:13; Tit. 3:5; Gal. 3:26; II Cor. 7:9; Eph. 4:30;
Rom. 8:15,16; I I Cor. 1:22; Eph. 1:14; II Pet. 1:21; II Tini.
1:10, 11; I Tim. 2:7; Rom. 16:25; Gen. 1:1; John 1:3, 12; Mark
12:29; I John 5:7; Rom. 11:33.</p>

<p>In the fourth place, I also believe all that this only God
spake by His holy prophets and apostles, and He Himself
declared and taught with His own mouth; and confess from this
same teaching of the Gospel, a holy Christian church, which is
the communion of the saints, and congregation of the believers,
new creatures, and children of God, which children are bound
together in unity and peace with the bond of love, and baptized
into one Spirit and body, as Paul says; for they confess one
Lord, one faith, one baptism, one God and Father of all, who is
above all, and through all, and in us all. They have the mind
which was in Jesus Christ, and look not at the things which are
seen, but at the things which are not seen, for their
conversation is in heaven; hence they are also the temple of
the living God, in which God dwells with His Holy Spirit, which
Spirit assures them, that they are the children of God, and are
justified by faith, and wait for all the promises of God. These
have the forgiveness of sins, and redemption through Jesus
Christ our Lord. Amen. Acts 24:14; I Cor. 12:13; II Cor. 5:17;
Eph. 4:5, 6; Phil. 2:5; II Cor. 4:18; Phil. 3:20; II Cor. 6:16;
Rom. 8:16; Eph. 1:7.</p>

<p>In the fifth place, I further confess from the holy
Scriptures, or Word of God, a baptism, both inward and outward.
Inwardly, as Christ says, with the Holy Ghost and with fire;
and outwardly; with water, in the name of the Father, and of
the Son, and of the Holy Ghost, in token of all that has taken
place within, as Paul says, that it is a burial of sin, and
also a washing of regeneration. If it then be a burial of sin,
and a washing of regeneration, as it also is, it is a vain
baptism which is used on infants, for infants, though they are
born of sinful seed, have never practiced sin, and do not know
it, since they understand neither good nor evil; and</p>

</div><div id="974"> 

<p>if they have never committed nor known sin, baptism, which
is a burial of sin, can not rightly be used on them. And so
they can also not be regenerated, since they are pure through
Christ and still in their first birth; hence, too, baptism does
not belong to them, since it is a washing of regeneration: but
I say that they are cleansed and redeemed through Christ, as
Christ Himself says, "Suffer little children, and forbid them
not, to come unto me; for of such is the kingdom of heaven."
Acts 1:5; Matt. 3:11; 28:19; Rom. 6:4; Ps. 51:5; Deut. 1:39;
Rev. 1:5; I John 1:7; Col. 1:14; Matt. 19: 14.</p>

<p>But when men grow up, and have attained their years, the
heart, as Jeremiah says, is deceitful above all things, and
desperately wicked. Hence there dwells no good thing in the
flesh, but it departs from the Lord in every respect, since
through evil lusts and desires the flesh is impelled to all
wickedness and sin, whereby they often go astray and sin,
because they have little or no right instruction; hence they
lose Christ's death and merits, under which grace they were
when they were first born. Men must therefore, according to the
Scriptures, through the power of the divine Word, be taught to
know sin; that sin and all unrighteousness are sin; and they
must be exhorted to repentance and amendment, that denying
ungodliness and worldly lusts, they should live soberly,
righteously, and godly, in this present world; and to become
new creatures, and regenerated children of God by faith, for we
cannot see, nor enter into, the kingdom of God, except we be
renewed and born again of water and of the Spirit. Which Spirit
in the Scriptures is called water as well its Spirit, even as
God spake by the prophet Joel, saying, "I will pour out my
Spirit upon all flesh," that is, upon all generations or
nations, namely that have become lowly in spirit and contrite
in heart, and believe in God. Which faith, as Paul says, cometh
by hearing the word of God. Hence I confess, that men must
first be taught, that they bring forth genuine fruits of
repentance, believe in Christ, and then be baptized upon their
faith, as Christ Himself ordained this, and commanded His
apostles, saying, "Go ye therefore, and teach all nations,
baptizing them in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and
of the Holy Ghost: teaching them to observe all things
whatsoever I have commanded you." And in the sixteenth chapter
of Mark, he says, "Go and preach the Gospel to every creature."
He that believeth and is baptized shall be saved; but he that
believeth not shall be damned. And the apostles did as they
were commanded, as we may read in the Acts of the Apostles, and
in their epistles: they first taught, and then baptized all the
God-fearing with water, in the name of the Lord, they that
hearkened to their words and believed in the Son of God
received baptism, and this for a burial of sin and washing of
regeneration, for a fulfillment of all righteousness and the
answer of a good conscience toward God, for a covenant to live
in holi ess and righteousness, and for an entrance into and
uniting with the body of Christ, which is the church of God;
for by one Spirit we are all baptized into one body, as Paul
says, "Ye are all the children of God by faith in Christ Jesus.
For as many of you as have been baptized into Christ have put
on Christ. There is neither Jew nor Greek, there is neither
bond nor free, there is neither male nor female; for ye are all
one in Christ Jesus." Jer. 17:9; Rom. 7:18; Gal. 5:17; I I Tim.
3:16; I John 3:4; Tit. 2:12; l I Cor. 5:17; I Pet. 1:23; Gal.
3:26; John 3:3, 5; Isa. 44:3; Joel 2:28; Isa. 57:15; Acts
16:34; Rom. 10:17; Acts 2:38;16:31; Matt. 28:19,20; Mark
16:15,16; Acts 2; 16:14; 2:41; 8:12; Matt. 3:15; I Pet. 3:21;
Luke 1:75; I Cor. 12:13; Gal. 3:26-28.</p>

<p>In the sixth place, I further confess from the Word of God,
a true Supper, with bread and wine, by which we are to show
Christ's sufferings, and His death, and also to remember the
new covenant, or testament, which He made with His people, and
sealed and confirmed with His blood. Even as Christ Himself
instituted the same, and observed it with His apostles, as is
written, "That Christ the same night in which he was betrayed,
took bread: and when he had given thanks, he brake it, and
said, Take, eat; this is my body, which is broken for you: this
do in remembrance of me. After the same manner also he took the
cup, when he had supped, saying, This cup is the new testament
in my blood, which is shed for many: this do in remembrance of
me." But all that are to eat this external bread, and to drink
the wine, truly in remembrance of Him, must first be renewed
and changed by the Word of God, so that they must be lowly of
spirit and contrite in heart, and truly confess Christ Jesus by
faith, that He alone is their Redeemer and Saviour; and they
must have love, unity and peace with one another, and must be
sanctified through the Holy Spirit, and assured in their
conscience by faith, that they are the children of God, and
heirs, who through grace shall be partakers of Christ's great
benefits, as, His merits, death and blood, for His suffering is
our rejoicing, and His death is our life, as Paul says, "That he
has reconciled us in the body of his flesh through death, to
present us holy and unblamable and unreprovable; and made peace
through the blood of his cross, by himself." And hence they are
to examine themselves, as Paul says, and so eat of the bread,
and drink of the cup; for he that eateth and drinketh
unworthily, eateth and drinketh judgment to himself, not
discerning the Lord's body. Hence Paul says, "The cup of
blessing which we bless, is it not the communion of the blood
of Christ? The bread which we break, is it not the communion of
the body of Christ? For we being many are one bread, and one
body: for we are all partakers of that one bread. Behold Israel
after the flesh: are not they which eat of the sacrifices
partakers of the altar?" Thus the communion of the body and the
blood of Christ must be in us, and he that so examines himself,
and through the</p>

</div><div id="975"> 

<p>Holy Spirit finds in his conscience, that he is an heir of
the great benefits of Christ, and a member of His body, he may
indeed use the memorials of bread and wine with regard to
it, as Christ says"This do in remembrance of me," and Paul
says"As often as ye eat this bread, and drink this cup, ye do
show the Lord's death till he come." Matthew 26:26; I Cor.
11:23; Heb. 9:12; Luke 22:19; Matt. 11:29; Col. 1:14; Matt.
1:21; Rom. 8:16, 17; Col. 1:20-22; Eph. 2:13; I Cor. 11:28, 29;
10:16-18; Rom. 12:5; I Cor. 11:26.</p>

<p>In the seventh place, I further confess a true Christian
excommunication, which is an excluding or binding of the
disobedient sinner, and a releasing or loosing of the obedient
penitent, even as Christ wisely instituted and effectually
taught the same, and His apostles thoroughly expounded, used
and also taught it, as Christ spake to the apostle, saying, "I
will give unto thee the keys of the kingdom of heaven: and
whatsoever thou shalt bind on earth shall be bound in heaven;
and whatsoever thou shalt loose on earth shall be loosed in
heaven." And he also says, "If thy hand offend thee, cut it off,
and cast it from thee: it is better to have only one hand, and
enter into life eternal, than having two hands to be cast into
everlasting fire." And the same he also says in regard to the
foot and the eye. Matt. 18:18; 16:19; 5:30; 18:8.</p>

<p>But though Christ taught His apostles all this, we do not
find it written, that the ordinance was used in Christ's time
by any.disciple, with regard to those who having transgressed
or apostatized, caused offenses; and this because of, the law,
which came to an end in the death of Christ, and because the
body was not yet perfect, and the temple of the Lord not yet
complete, since they were yet very ignorant, and in many
matters not fully instructed, as Christ says to them, "I have
yet many things to say unto you, but you cannot bear them now.
Howbeit when he, the Spirit of truth is come he will guide you
into all truth." Which spirit they must receive, before they
could bind or release any one with the key (which is the Word
and Spirit of God), as Christ also indicates with these words,
when He breathed on them, and said, "Receive ye the Holy Ghost:
whosesoever sins ye remit, they are remitted unto them; and
whosesoever sins ye retain, they are retained." Not that Christ
gave the apostles authority, to forgive or to retain any one's
sins contrary to His Word, and thus to govern the church
according to their will. No; God forbid! They had to act
without respect to persons, even though it had been their right
hand-retain the sins of those who according to the Word of God
were under the wrath of God, and proclaim grace and peace to
the penitent, who according to the same word were under the
grace of God; and thus Christ appointed unto them the kingdom
as His Father had appointed it unto Him. Rom. 10:4; John 16:12,
13; 20:22, 23; Luke 22:29.</p>

<p>But I repeat it, though Christ had so appointed and taught
it to them, yet, according to my view,they had then neither a
command nor authority to use the same, as already said, before
Christ had ascended up to heaven, having sent them forth, to
preach the Gospel in all the world, to every creature, teaching
to observe whatsoever He had commanded them. They also had to
tarry in Jerusalem, until they were endued with power from on
high, and had received the promise of the Father, which was the
Holy Ghost, who was their teacher and power, whereby they
proceeded in this practice. And when the body was perfect, and
the temple of the living God complete, in which God dwelt with
His Spirit, the apostle effectually taught Christ's institution
and ordinance of excommunication, and also used it, as we may
read, how the apostle delivered Hymeneus and Alexander unto
Satan, that they might learn not to blaspheme. And so he also
punished the Corinthian fornicator, concerning whom he had
determined, when they were gathered together, and his spirit,
with the power of Christ, to deliver him unto Satan, for the
destruction of the flesh, that the spirit might be saved. Since
the Corinthian church was very slack in regard to using this
excommunication in the case of him that had done that deed,
therefore he reproved them with severe words, as we may read in
the second epistle to the Corinthians, chapters 12 and 13. As
he also wrote to them, that .a little leaven leaveneth the
whole lump, therefore he says, "Purge out the old leaven, that
ye may be a new lump." And thus Paul used excommunication, and
also would have it used, even as he writes to the
Thessalonians, saying, "We command you, brethren,- in the name
of our Lord Jesus Christ, that ye withdraw yourselves from
every brother that walketh disorderly, and not after the
tradition which he received of us." For in this epistle he had
written to the Corinthians, not to company with fornicators,
and since they did not observe it, or perhaps not well
understand it, he explained it to them more fully, and
said, "Yet not altogether with the fornicators of this world, or
with the covetous, or extortioners, or with idolaters; for then
must we needs go out of the world. But now I have written unto
you not to keep company, if any man that is called a brother be
a fornicator, or covetous, or an idolater, or a railer, or a
drunkard, or an extortioner; with such a one no not to eat."
And thus I confess that such carnal men, who thus sin against
God, are, according to the ordinance of Christ, with the Word
of God, as Paul has explained this thus, to be excommunicated
and excluded from the church, and that we are also not to
company with them, as the apostle says, "If any man, obey not
our word, signify that man by an epistle, and have no company
with him, that he may be ashamed" or think with himself, that
for his presumptuousness and transgression he is delivered unto
Satan (whom he obediently served according to his will, and
also hearkened to for the sake of sin,) for the destruction of
the flesh, which before the fall lived and desired to live in
sin; that</p>

</div><div id="976"> 

<p>he may be ashamed, may humble himself, repent truly, and
thus die unto sin, and the spirit be saved in the day of our
Lord. For as the Word of God has power to excommunicate the
presumptuous transgressor, so it has also power to teach and to
avoid the excommunicated person, since excommunication is
ineffectual without avoidance. And as excommunication and
avoidance are thoroughly taught in the Scriptures, I confess
both, since also Paul excommunicated, and also taught, to put
away him that doeth evil, and says, "Keep not company with them;
with such [ as he there specifies</p>

<p>ye shall not eat." Even as he also says concerning a man
that is a heretic, "When ye have once or twice admonished him,
reject him, knowing that he that is such, is subverted, and
sinneth, being condemned of himself. For such cause contention
and offenses, and their words eat as doth a canker;" hence the
church is to avoid them, lest she be leavened or corrupted by
them. Matt. 28:20; Luke 24:49; Acts 1:8; I Tim. 1:20; I Cor. 5;
Gal. 5:9; II Thess. 3:6, 14; Tit. 3:10, 11; Rom. 16:17; I Tim.
2:17.</p>

<p>Let the reader be informed that Jacob van den Wege, the
writer of the preceding letter, owing to want of opportunity
did not further carry out or write down the articles of faith,
though he was sufficiently informed in all, and continued
therein steadfastly unto death.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER LETTER FROM JACOB VAN DEN WEGE,<br />
WRITTEN IN HIS BONDS, TO OTHER PRISONERS</h2> 

<p>The unfathomable abundant grace and mercy of God the
heavenly Father, the peace, holiness and merits of our Lord
Jesus Christ the Son of God, and the joy, comfort and power of
the Holy Ghost. This only, eternal and Almighty God, who alone
is holy and good, grant you, my dear and most affectionate
beloved sisters in the Lord, who are now imprisoned for the
testimony of our Lord Jesus Christ, this my salutation, yea,
the Lord grant it to you through His great goodness and
benevolence; this I wish you from the depth of my heart, as an
affectionate and cordial greeting. Amen.</p>

<p>Further, after all unfeigned Christian salutation, let my
dear sisters in the Lord, please, be informed, that we three
prisoners, who now are also in bonds, in Ghent, in the count's
castle, for the testimony and doctrine of our Saviour Jesus
Christ, are still of good cheer, and not changed in the least
in our purpose to suffer with Christ, and to strive for the
truth. And we are also ready not only to endure poverty,
reproach, imprisonment, and bonds, but also to die for the name
of the Lord, if it be His pleasure; and all this by His great
and mighty power, with which He strengthens us through His
great grace; to Him be praise, thanks and glory forever.</p>

<p>From your letter I also understood that it is still well
with you four, on account of which I and my fellow prisoners
were much rejoiced, and I prayGod the Father of our Lord Jesus
Christ, who has chosen us hereunto from our birth, and through
His great mercy and love has given us His abundant grace, that
He would keep and strengthen us unto the end with His Holy
Spirit, that His name may be praised and honored forever
through us all, for the edification of our neighbor, and the
salvation of our souls. O my dearly beloved sisters in the
Lord, let us continue steadfastly, and take good heed, that we
do not neglect the grace of God which He has so faithfully
shown us, but well improve it, for through neglect one may soon
lose that for which he has labored so long, and then it is
sometimes very difficult to find it again. Hence I say, let us
take good heed, and hold fast that which we have, that no one
take our crown. For if we continue steadfast in that which we
have, we shall without any doubt be saved through the grace of
our Lord Jesus Christ. Heb. 12:15; Rev. 3:11; Matt. 10:22; Acts
15:11. And to this end (namely, to be saved) we have already
begun; may God grant us strength, that we may be able to carry
it out to His praise and to the salvation of our souls. For God
knows, that on earth we seek. no other riches or honor, than
the honor of His name and the salvation of our souls, for which
salvation we now with great patience endure here so much
affliction amidst sorrowing and sighing (all of which rises
from reproach and imprisonment), together with manifold
conflicts and temptations.</p>

<p>But, my most beloved, let us not become despondent in
tribulation and affliction, nor let us think it strange as
though some strange thing happened unto us, for from the
beginning of the world the righteous had to suffer; but let us
rejoice herein that we are partakers of Christ's sufferings,
well knowing that if we suffer with Him, we shall also reign
with Him. I Pet. 4:12, 13; II Tim. 2:12. For Paul says, that it
is given unto us, not only to believe on Christ, but also to
suffer for His sake; for we must through much tribulation and
affliction enter into the kingdom of heaven. Phil. 1:29; Acts
14:22. But the sufferings of this world are not worthy to be
compared with the glory which shall be revealed in us, who look
not at the things which are seen, but at the things which are
not seen, for eye hath not seen, nor ear heard, neither have
entered into the heart of man, the things which God hath
prepared for them who love Him and keep His commandments; but
He hath revealed them unto us by His Spirit. Rom. 8:18; II Cor.
4:18; I Cor. 2:9, 10. Hence, my dear sisters, we ought to be
comforted by these promises, and work with a joyful heart in
the vineyard of -the Lord, patiently endure the heat of the
sun, and not fear what man shall do unto us, for we know, and
are sure through our faith, that if they kill our body, our
Redeemer liveth, and that He shall hereafter raise us up from
the earth, and then we shall in our flesh see God; our eyes
shall behold Him and not another. Job 19:25. And Paul says,
that we look for the Saviour, Jesus Christ, who shall</p>

</div><div id="977"> 

<p>change our vile body, that He may fashion it like unto His
glorious body. Phil. 3:20, 21. Then shall we be caught up in
the air to meet Him, to inherit eternal life, and then shall He
fill our hearts with joy, and comfort us, and make us glad
after our tribulation, shall wipe our tears from our eyes, and
shall reward our labor, for sorrow and mourning shall flee away
from us, and everlasting joy shall be upon our heads. I Thess.
4:17; Rev. 7:17; Isaiah 51:11. Yea, all this shall happen to us
through His great grace and if we firmly persevere and take
good heed, and abide steadfast unto the end in that which we
have, we shall be saved. Herewith I will commend you to the
Lord, that He will keep you my dear sisters in the Lord, with
the strong power of His Holy Spirit. And take my brief
unfeigned letter in good part, for I had almost not written you
at all, because of my ignorance and simplicity; but through
your request I dared not forbear.</p>

<p>Written with my own hand, on the last day of April.
Farewell. Amen. My fellow prisoners also greet you most
cordially with the peace of the Lord. By me.</p>

<p>JACOB VAN DEN WEGE.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER LETTER BY JACOB VAN DEN WEGE</h2> 

<p>I Jacob, imprisoned for the name of the Lord our God, grace,
peace, mercy and love from God our heavenly Father, through
Jesus Christ, His only Son our Lord, who delivered Himself up
for our sins, when we were yet enemies, that He might redeem us
from this present evil world, and purify unto Himself a people
zealous of all good works. Rom. 5:10; Gal. 1:4; Tit. 2:14. This
I wish my dear sister in the Lord as an affectionate greeting.
Amen.</p>

<p>After salutation, my dearly beloved sister in the Lord, even
as we are both born of one mother according to the flesh, so I
hope that according to the spirit we are also born of one God,
for we confess, and believe in one eternal God, Creator of all
things and by faith He has regenerated us with the Word of
truth, that we should be a kind of first fruits of His
creatures, as the apostle says, "Whosoever believeth that Jesus
is the Christ is born of God</p>

<p>and every one that loveth him that begat, loveth also him
that is begotten of him." Therefore, he that loveth God, and is
begotten of Him, must love the brethren, for he that loveth not
his brother abideth in death, and whosoever hateth his brother
is a murderer; and ye know that no murderer hath eternal life
abiding in him. James 1:18; I John 5:1; 3:14, 15. Hence Peter
says, "Purify your souls in obeying the truth through the Spirit
unto unfeigned love of the brethren, being born again, not of
corruptible seed, but of incorruptible, by the word of God,
which liveth and abideth forever." I Peter 1:22, 23. As also
Paul says, "Be ye therefore followers of God, as dear children;
and walk in love as Christ also hath loved us, andhath given
himself for us, an offering and a sacrifice to God, for a sweet
smelling savor." Eph. 5:1, 2. My dear sister, put on therefore,
as the elect of God, holy and beloved, bowels of mercies,
kindness, humbleness of mind, meekness, longsuffering;
forbearing one another, and forgiving one another, if any man
have a quarrel against any</p>

<p>even as Christ forgave you so also do ye. And above all
these things put on charity, which is the bond of perfectness.
And let the peace of God rule in your hearts, and be ye
thankful. Let the word of Christ dwell in you richly in all
wisdom; teaching and admonishing one another in psalms and
hymns and spiritual songs, singing with grace in your hearts to
the Lord. And 'whatsoever ye do in word or deed, do all in the
name of the Lord Jesus, giving thanks to God and the Father by
Him. Col. 3:12-17.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear sister, constantly walk devoutly in all
things, and be faithful to Him who hath called you out of
darkness into His light, from lies into the truth, and from
hatred into love; and therefore are you called, that you should
walk in the light, in the truth, and in love; and by this, says
Christ, shall all men know that ye are My disciples, if ye have
love one to another. Yea, my dear sister, the end of the
commandment is charity out of a pure heart, and of a good
conscience, and of faith unfeigned. I Peter 2:9; John 12:35;
Eph. 5:8; John 13:35; 1 Tim. 1:5.</p>

<p>Herewith I commend you to the Lord, and to the comforting
Word of His grace. The God of peace, that brought again from
the dead our Lord Jesus, that great Shepherd of the sheep,
through the blood of the everlasting covenant, make you perfect
in every good work to do His will, working in you that which is
well pleasing in His sight, through Jesus Christ; to whom be
glory forever and ever. Amen. Heb. 13:20, 21.</p>

<p>Written on the 4th of July, A. D. 1573. Keep this in
remembrance of me your weak brother in the Lord, and do not
forget me and my fellow prisoners in your prayers; we will do
likewise according to our weak ability.</p>

<p>JACOB VAN DEN WEGE.</p>

<h2>THE LAST WORDS WRITTEN BY JACOB VAN DEN<br />
WEGE, AFTER HE HAD RECEIVED WORD<br />
THAT HE WAS TO DIE</h2> 

<p>I, a prisoner for the name of the Lord, wish all my dear
brethren and sisters much spiritual wisdom and consolation
through the Holy Ghost, especially to my dear wife and
children, whom I greatly love; but the Almighty Lord must be
the nearest, as you are yourselves taught from the Word of God.
Hence, my dear wife, whom I love, I write you this little for a
parting letter in this world. Adieu my love, the Lord lighten
your tribulation; and my most beloved sister in the Lord,
namely, my mother: O mother, be of good cheer in the Lord; the
God of all comfort deliver you</p>

</div><div id="978"> 

<p>from your tribulation. And Sijntgen, Grietgen, and Claerken,
my dear sisters in the Lord, always be at peace with one
another, and comfort one another in love. Adieu, all of you. I
now go to deliver up my life for the name of the Lord. Written
the day that I received word that I must die. Adieu Tanneken,
my oldest daughter, and Grietgen (O that the Lord might take
you), and Betgen my youngest daughter, adieu.</p>

<p>Written in my bonds, by me, your dear husband and brother in
the Lord.</p>

<p>JACOB VAN DEN WEGE,</p>

<br />

<h1>MAEYKEN VAN DEVENTER, PUT TO DEATH FOR THE 
TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, AT ROTTERDAM 
IN HOLLAND, A. D. 1573</h1> 

<p>Not only those of the city of Ghent, in Flanders, of whom we
have just spoken, but also those of Rotterdam, in Holland,
again imbrued their hands at this time in the blood of the
saints. This appeared in the case of a very pious and
God-fearing heroine of Jesus Christ, who, a native of Deventer
according to the flesh, was nevertheless from the heavenly
Jerusalem, born again of God; whose name here upon earth was
Maeyken van Deventer, while her inward and spiritual name was
known only to God, and recorded in the secret book of God's
perpetual remembrance.</p>

<p>She was apprehended for her saving faith, in the city of
Rotterdam, in Holland, without any fear from the neighboring
cities, as -the city of Dortrecht had already a year before,
under the reign of the Prince of Orange, William I,
capitulated, no longer to shed innocent blood on -. -count of
the faith; which had taken place in July, A. D. 1572, while
this occurred about the middle of the year 1573.</p>

<p>They did not stop at imprisonment, but proceeded further
with her, so that when she could not be turned from her
steadfast and true faith, sentence of death was speedily
pronounced upon her, that she should be put to death, as an
immovable and obstinate heretic. O God, how couldst Thou
tolerate it!</p>

<p>This sentence was speedily executed on her by the
executioner, so that, having commended her soul into the hands
of God, she left her body upon earth as a prey.</p>

<p class="3"><i>Observations concerning the death sentence
of</i><br />
<i>Maeyken van Deventer</i></p>

<p>We have taken much trouble, to obtain, if possible, the
death sentence of this pious woman Maeyken van Deventer, as
well as of others of our dear fellow believers that were put to
death at Rotterdam; but we have been informed by the secretary
there, who searched for it, that in the year 1600, just
fifty-nine years ago, there was a great fire in the city hall,
whereby the examinations and death sentences of said martyrs
were all burned, together with all that had been recorded with
regard to this, previous to the year 1600, as we also, for the
year1572, showed to have occurred at Breda; certainly a
lamentable matter, which might cause to pass into oblivion that
which we ought constantly to remember, namely, the steadfast
death of the saints. To prevent such oblivion, we have deemed
it necessary to notice this matter more fully than has ever
before been done. This by way of notice.</p>

<h2>A TESTAMENT MADE BY MAEYKEN VAN DEVENTER<br />
FOR HER CHILDREN</h2> 

<p>My children according to the flesh, but, alas! not according
to the spirit, here is a testament, which I, your mother, leave
you, namely, Albert, Johan, Egbert, Truyken, my dear children.
The Lord bless you, as Isaac blessed his son Jacob, that he
should be a ruler over his brethren. My children in the flesh,
I must leave you young; may the Most High permit us to meet in
the world to come, which shall be done before long by the
Father, who will paternally b'ess us with His most holy name.
This I expect from day to day, that, when it pleases the Lord,
I may offer up my life and body for His holy name's sake, and I
trust that this will not be deferred, and that the good Lord
will not forget me any longer. When you hear this, sorrow not,
as the world does, which has no hope, or knows not where they
shall be; but thank the Most High, that you had a mother who
was found worthy to shed her blood for the name of the Lord,
and who, through His great grace and mercy, may be counted as a
witness or martyr. Hence, my children, respect this testament
which I leave you.</p>

<p>I cannot leave you gold or silver, nor can I give you
treasures of this world, as the world gives to her children;
for this I did not take with me, but left it to your carnal
father; and this I also did not seek, but I sought the eternal
riches, which are imperishable. Do you also seek this way, and
you shall live forever; and follow this testament and the
instruction which I here write you. Even as Christ Jesus our
forerunner left such to us for an everlasting testament, and
sealed it with His blood; such a testament I also leave you,
and will likewise seal the same with my blood, even as the
blessed Jesus did. My children, do not set at naught or lightly
esteem this; be not heedless: it is better than gold, for it
will save your souls. If you do what I write you, you shall see
me again in great glory, and you shall be as kings and queens;
but you must keep yourselves from this corruptible world, for
it shall pass away with all its lusts.</p>

<p>Hear, my children, the instruction of your mother, and
incline your hearts to understanding, and open your ears to
hear the words of my mouth, for I seek the salvation of your
souls; believe me, and no one else, that you may come to me and
live forever. Behold, my children, I hold before you the way of
my Bridegroom, and our forerunner, Christ Jesus, who went
before me, which leads to the truth, as the Lord has commanded
me; and behold, I take up my cross, and follow the Saviour of
the</p>

</div><div id="979"> 

<p>whole world. Do so, too, my children; I shall go before you,
without looking backfor this is the way of the prophets and..
martyrs, and behold, I shall now drink the cup which they.,
drank. I now go the way which Christ Jesus, the Lord full of
all grace and truth; who laid down His life for His sheep,
went; this cup I must drink, as Christ says, "I have a cup to
drink of, and a,baptism to be baptized with;, and how am I
straitened till it be, accomplished,l" klatthew 20:22; Luke
12:50. And having thus passed. through, He calls His sheep, and
his sheep hear His. voice, and .follow Him whithersoever Ile.
goes, for this is the way to the living fountain; this way went
the .priestly kings coining from the rising of the sun, as is
written in Revelation (Rev. 16:12 ), and entered into eternity.
And behold; they had to drink of this cup, and to go this way,
who are now under the altar, crying and saying, "Lord almighty
Father, how long dost thou not avenge our blood on then that
dwell on the earth? And white robes were given them, and it was
answered unto them: Bear yet for a little season, till the
number of your brethren that shall also be killed yet for the
testimony of Jesus Christ be fulfilled." Rev. 6:9-11. These
also drank of the cup, and ascended up to enjoy the eternal
Sabbath of the Lord. And of this cup also those had to drink
who are crowned, have palms in their hands, and are clothed in
white. 11 Esd. 2:42. Yea, this is also the. way trod by. the
four and twenty elders that. stand before the throne of God,
and cast their crowns from their heads, and their harps before
the throne of the Lamb, and falling down upon their faces,
.say;"O God, to thee alone be praise, honor and glory, power
and strength, forever and ever. Lord almighty God, who wilt
speedily avenge the blood of thy servants and ministers, thine
be the victory; magnified by thy name, which is, and which was,
and which is to come." Rev. 4:10, 11. This way also walked the
marked of the Lord, who had the mark in their foreheads, who
were chosen out of all the kindreds of men, who were not
defiled with women, but follow the Lamb whithersoever He goeth.
7:3; 14:3, 4. Behold, these had tp drink the bitter cup, and
also all those that are still lacking of the number and
fulfillment of Zion, which is the bride of the Lainb, and the
new Jerusalem, which shall descend out of heaven, in which city
and throne the glory of the great King shall be revealed and
seen, when the marriage feast shall be kept and celebrated in
the'day of the high and; holy Sabaoth, the Lord their God,
which is the day of their rest -and joy, 6:11; 21:10. Behold,
all these first ,suffered the judgment in their flesh, and had
to hear the punishment of this world,' for 'Jesus Christ -wa's
the first one, as is written"The Lamb -.slain"from the
foundation of the world;" and Paul says, that whom; He did
foreknow He also did predestinate to be conformed to the linage
of His Son. Rev. 13:8; Roin. 8:29. Christ our Saviour also
says, that the servant is not better than his lord, nor the
disciple above his master; lint it is enough for thedisciple,
that he be as his master. Matthew 10:24, 25. This also Peter
declares to us, who says that the time is. come that judgment
must begin at the house of God; and if it first begin at God's
elect, what shall the end be of them that have not believed the
Gospel of God?and if the righteous scarcely be Saved, where
shall the unrighteous appear? I Pet. 4:17, 18.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear children, press through the strait gate, for
strait and narrow is the way that leadeth unto life, and few
there be that find it, and still less that walk it; but wide
and broad is the way that leadeth to destruction, and many
there be that walk therein. Matt. 7:13, 14.</p>

<p>Therefore, my children, heed the chastening and instruction
of the Lord, and bow your shoulders under His yoke and easy
burden, and bear it patiently from your, youth, thanking Him
with great honor, for He receives no sons whom He does 'not
chasten, for if you forsake chastisement after this manner,
whereof we all are become partakers, you are not children, but
bastards, and you shall be cast out of your Father's
inheritance. Heb. 12:6.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear children, gird your loins, and follow Christ,
and neither fear nor rest till you have found this way. And
search the Scriptures:'they shall show you the way of life, for
the angel says, to Esdras, "Behold, a city is builded, and set
upon a broad field, and is full of all good things: tli.~
entrance thereof is narrow, and set in a dangerous place to
fall, like' as if there were a fire on the right hand, and on
the left a deep water: and one only path between them both,
even between the fire and the water, so small that there could
but one main go there at once. If this city now were given unto
a man for an inheritance, if he never shall pass the danger set
before it, how shall he receive this inlieritance?" II Esd.
7:6-9. Behold; my children, this way has no retreats; there are
also no byways, that lie on the right hand or on the left; this
is the: way which is found by so few, and trod by still fewer;
yea, there are indeed some that-see it who well know that this
is the way unto life, but it is too hard for them; it hurts
them far too much.</p>

<p>Therefore, my children, regard not the great multitude,
neither walk in their ways; refrain your feet from their path,
for they go to hell, even as sheep to the, slaughter, as the
prophet Isaiah tells us saying, "Hell hath opened wide her
mouth, that there may enter in the princes of the earth, and
the common people." For it is a people of no understanding;
therefore he that made them Will not have mercy on them. Prov.
1:15; Isa. 59:7; 5:14; 27:11.</p>

<p>But, my children, remember what I write, and wherever you
hear that there is a plain, rejected little flock, that is
despised and cast out by this world.; join them; and wherever
you hear of the cross, of Christ, depart not away. But flee the
shadow of this world, go to God; fear Him alone; keep; His
commandments; remember all His words to"do after them; write
them upon the tables of your heart; and bind them on your
forehead, and</p>

</div><div id="980"> 

<p>speak of His statutes night and day, and you shall be a
pleasant branch in the garden of the Lord, yea, a beloved plant
growing up in Zion.</p>

<p>My children, call the fear of the Lord your Father, and
wisdom and understanding shall be your mother. If you do this,
my c'_:ildren, the Lord shall bless you, and sanctify your body
for His service that His name, may be sanctified through you,
and magnified to His glory. Confess Him before men, that He may
also confess you before His heavenly Father. Yea, forsake your
life, my children, rather than that you should depart from the
truth. And follow me; I go before you as a valiant soldieress,
who is prepared for the war or conflict of the Lord, that I may
deliver up my life for the name of the Lord. My children, I,
your mother, the instrument whereby you have been brought into
this sorrowful world, desire your salvation. Believe me what I
write you and have left you, and no one else, except what they
say agrees with the holy Scriptures. If you do this, you shall
come to me, and I to you. If you lose your body, which is of
the earth, the Lord has prepared you a better in heaven. Hence,
my children, strive valiantly unto death for the truth and for
righteousness, and arm yourselves with the armor of God, that
you may be found valiant Israelites; trample down the world and
all unrighteousness that is therein; love or seek only that
which is above, and remember that you are not of the world,
even as your Lord and Master was also not of the world. John
15:19; 17:16. And be diligent, that you too may be found
disciples; whatsoever you shall ask then, shall be done unto
you; for no man can say that Jesus is the Lord, but by the Holy
Ghost, for the true worshipers shall worship God in Spirit and
in truth; for these Christ prayed, and not for the world, for
when the world prays, it calls upon the devil, and they desire
that his will be done in them. John 15:7; I Cor. 12:3; John
4</p>

<p>23; 17:9. Hence, my dear children, do not become conformed
to it; flee from it, and have no fellowship with it. Rom. 12:2;
Eph. 5:11. Regard not what is fair to the eyes, for it is all
vanity; seek only those things which are above, and set your
affection on things above, and not on things on the earth Col.
3:1, 2. Let your eyes ever look to the Lord and always labor
with prayer and supplication, that you may ever be with Him in
heart. Heb. 12:2. Let your laughter be turned to weeping, for
we are pilgrims here upon earth; and let there be nothing in
this world, which can rejoice you, for it is all vanity, and
passes away. Jas. 4:9; I Peter 2:11; II Cor. 4:18. Beware of
covetousness with regard to earthly riches, for this is the
true foundation of perdition. Luke 12:15; I Tim. 6:9. Re member
me. The Lord cause you to walk in His fear, and fill you with
His Holy Spirit and sanctify your understanding and mind. My
children, be circumspect in all your conversation, and
whatsoever you do, therein let the name of the Lord be praised
and blessed. Col. 3:17. And guard, yourlips, that you may riot
take the name of God into your mouth in vain, for this is a
great unrecognized sin; and do not use the name of God, except
you do it with great reverence, with bended knees and with
uncovered head, or it will be accounted ill to you. Ex. 20:7.
Pray God that you may learn to know Him, and be not ashamed to
confess and honor Him, who can save your souls; for the Lord
will not tolerate that His people deny Him, for it is enough
that the world dishonors and denies Him; hence let us honor,
praise and glorify His holy name with the whole heart, for it
is written, that whosoever takes the name of the Lord in vain
is worthy of death.</p>

<p>Therefore, my children, love your neighbor heartily, and
this with a liberal heart. Let the light of the Gospel shine in
you. II Cor. 4:4. Deal your bread to the hungry, clothe the
naked, and do not suffer anything to remain with you double,
since there are enough that lack. Isa. 58:7. And whatsoever the
Lord grants you, that possess with thankfulness, not only for
yourselves, but also for your neighbor, and seek not your own
profit, but that of your neighbor. In short, my children, let
your life be conformed to the Gospel of Christ. And the God of
peace, that brought again from the dead our Lord Jesus, that
great Shepherd of the sheep, through the blood of the
everlasting covenant, make you perfect in every good work to do
His will, working in you that which is well pleasing in His
sight, that your whole spirit, soul and body may be found
blameless unto the appearing of our Lord Jesus Christ, to whom
be glory, power and majesty forever and ever. Amen. Heb. 13:20,
21; I Thessalonians 5:23.</p>

<h2>A PRAYER BY SAID MAEYKEN VAN DEVENTER</h2> 

<p>O holy Father, sanctify the children of Thy handmaiden in
Thy truth, and keep them from all evil, and from all
unrighteousness, for Thy holy name's sake. O Almighty Father, I
commend them unto You, since they are Thy creatures;.care for
them, for they are Thy handiwork; so that they may walk in Thy
paths. Amen.</p>

<br />

<h1>MAEYKEN WENS, AND SOME OF HER FELLOW-BELIEVERS, BURNT FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST AT. ANTWERP, A. D. 1573</h1> 

<p>The north wind of persecution blew now the longer the more
through the garden of the Lord, so that the herbs and trees of
the same (that is the true believers) were rooted out of the
earth through the violence that came against them. This
appeared, among other instances, in the case of a very
God-fearing and pious woman, named Maey ken Wens, who was the
wife of a faithful minister of the church of God in the,city of
Antwerp, by the name of Mattheus Wens, by trade a mason. About
the month of April, A. D. 1573, she, together with others of
her fellow believers, was apprehended at</p>

</div><div id="981"> 

<p>Antwerp, bound, and confined in the severest
prison there. In the meantime she was subjected to much
conflict and temptation by so-called spirituals
(ecclesiastics), as well as by secular persons, to cause her to
apostatize from her faith. But when she could by no manner of
means, not even by severe tortures, be turned from the
steadfastness of her faith, they, on the fifth day of October,
1573, passed sentence upon her, and pronounced it publicly in
court at the afore-mentioned place, namely, that she should,
with her mouth screwed shut, or with her tongue screwed up, be
burnt to ashes as a heretic, together with several others, who
were also imprisoned and stood in like faith with her.</p>

<p>Thereupon, the following day, the sixth of
October, this pious and God-fearing heroine of Jesus Christ, as
also her fellow believers that had been condemned with a like
sentence, were brought forth, with their tongues screwed fast,
as innocent sheep for the slaughter, and each having been
fastened to a stake in the marketplace, deprived, by fierce and
terrible flames, of their lives and bodies, so that in a short
time they were consumed to ashes; which severe punishment of
death they steadfastly endured; hence the Lord shall
hereafter change their vile bodies, and fashion them like
unto His glorious body. Phil. 3:21.</p>

<h2>Further Observation</h2> 

<p>The oldest son of the afore-mentioned martyress,
named Adriaen Wens, aged about fifteen years, could not stay
away from the place of execution on the day on which his dear
mother was offered up; hence he took his youngest little
brother, named Hans (or Jan) Mattheus Wens, who was about three
years old, upon his arm and went and stood with him somewhere
upon a bench, not far from the stakes erected, to behold his
mother's death.</p>

<p>But when she was brought forth and placed at the
stake, he lost consciousness, fell to the ground, and remained
in this condition until his mother and the rest were burnt.
Afterwards, when the people had gone away, having regained
consciousness, he went to the place where his mother had been
burnt, and hunted in the ashes, in which he found the screw
with which her tongue had been screwed fast, which he kept in
remembrance of her.</p>

<p>There are at present, 1659, several grandchildren
(well known to us) still living of this pious martyress, who
are named after her.</p>

</div><div id="982"> 

<p>Touching the others, her fellow believers, who were put to
death with her, we are not able, because it is so long ago, to
give their names, but it appears to us, that they are those who
are mentioned in the next following account (that is, the
women*) since it is stated of them, that they were, on the same
day, namely the sixth of October, 1573, also put to death, at
Antwerp, by fire. This by way of notice.</p>

<h2>THE LETTERS AND TESTIMONIES OF MAEYKEN<br />
WENS, WIFE OF MATTHEUS WENS, MASON, IN<br />
HIS LIFETIME A MINISTER OF THE CHURCH<br />
OF GOD AT ANTWERP; OFFERED UP THE<br />
6TH OF OCTOBER, 1573</h2> 

<p class="c3">Bemint Gott boven al: op den Steen,</p>

<p class="c3">Daer de vreugde is seer kleen;</p>

<p class="c3">Maer ik hope 't sal hier haest zijn gedaen</p>

<p class="c3">Als't God belieft my in genade't ontfaen.</p>

<p>Grace and peace from God the Father, through Jesus Christ
His only begotten Son, who grant you wisdom and understanding,
that you may wisely govern yourself and your children, and
bring them up in the fear of God, to which end may the good
Father strengthen you, and the Holy Ghost comfort you in your
tribulation. This is the greeting and wish of my heart to you
my dear and much beloved husband in the Lord. After all
salutation, I inform you that I am still tolerably well
according to the flesh, and also according to the spirit I
trust I am doing the best; but my best is nothing special, and
I regret, that I am not more thankful for all that comes upon
me, for it is all the work of the Lord. We ought to thank the
Lord in adversity as well as in that which is agreeable to the
flesh; for if the Lord takes all from us, He takes from us no
more than what He has lent us, for it belongs to us no longer
than it pleases the Lord, Oh that I could always thank the Lord
as well when the flesh suffers adversity, as when it
prospers-then we can thank the Lord indeed.</p>

<p>O my dear friend, I should never have thought that parting
should come so hard to me as it does. True the imprisonment
seemed hard to me; but that was because they were so
tyrannical; but now the parting is the hardest of all.</p>

<p>O my very dear and beloved husband, pray the Lord heartily
in my behalf, to remove the conflict from me; for it is in His
power, if it is His pleasure. Truly the Lord has said, "He that
does not forsake everything is not worthy of me;" for the Lord
well knew that it would come hard to the flesh. But I hope that
the Lord will also help me through even as He has helped many,
and for which I can simply trust Him. Oh, how easy it is to be
a Christian, so long as the flesh is not put to the trial, or
nothing has to be relinquished; then it is an easy thing to be
a Christian.</p>

<p>Herewith I will conclude my letter, and commend you and your
children to the Lord, that you</p>

<p class="c8">* These are called: Janneken Mumstdorp, Msriken,
Misken.may walk in wisdom, to the edification of your neighbor,
and the salvation of your soul. I coin mend you to the Lord,
and to the rich Word of His grace: this is the good greeting
and wish of, my heart. As regards further the visiting, you may
do in the matter according to your pleasure; for 1 should
indeed often desire your visit, were it not for the expense.
But if you want to make your heart glad, you may come; I dare
say nothing else, except that it costs so much, else I should
desire to have you come soon. If you come, go to no expense in
the way of bringing anything with you, as it costs far too
much. No more for this time, except that you may prosper in
soul and body; this is my desire. Greet the acquaintances in
the Lord much in my name, and also the friends according to the
flesh. My companions also greet you much. My children also come
in for a share.</p>

<p>Written in my bonds by me,</p>

<p class="c5">MAEYKEN WENS.</p>

<h2>THE SECOND LETTER FROM MAEYKEN WENS,<br />
WRITTEN TO HER HUSBAND</h2> 

<p>The grace and peace of God the Father, and the great mercy
and love of the Son our Lord Jesus Christ, who through grace
was sent by the Father to the salvation of all those that have
died unto their sins, and are thus risen with Christ unto
newness of life; and the eternal, unfathomable joy, comfort,
and fellowship of the Holy Ghost, strengthen and keep your
hearts and minds in Christ Jesus, to whom be glory forever and
ever. Amen.</p>

<p>After all cordial salutation to you my very dear and beloved
husband and brother in the Lord, I inform you that my heart is
still fixed to offer up a sacrifice to the Lord, the Lord be
praised for the great grace which He shows to me poor,
miserable creature. And I am also tolerably well according to
the flesh, as I trust through the grace of the Lord that it is
also with you, my most beloved in the Lord. Nothing more for
this time, but I commend you to the Lord and to the words of
His grace; this is the good wish and greeting of my heart.
Farewell. Pray for me.</p>

<p>By me, your dear wife and sister in the Lord.</p>

<p class="c5">MAEYKEN WENS.</p>

<h2>THE THIRD LETTER FROM MAEYKEN WENS, WRIT<br />
TEN IN PRISON AT ANTWERP, THE <i>21ST</i> OF<br />
APRIL, A. D. <i>1573,</i> TO HER SON</h2> 

<p><i>Always fear God and love Him above all</i></p>

<p>My dear child Adriaen, my son, I leave you this for a
testament, because you are the oldest, to exhort you that you
should begin to fear our dear Lord, for you are getting old
enough to perceive what is good or evil; think of Betteken, who
is about as old as you are. My son, from your youth follow that
which is good and depart from evil: do good while you have
time, and look at your father, how lovingly he went before me
with kindness and</p>

</div><div id="983"> 

<p>courteousness, always instructing me with the Word of the
Lord. Oh, if I had so followed after him, how light would be my
bonds! Hence, my dear son; beware of that which is evil, that
you will 'not have to lament afterwards, "Had I done this or
that; for then, when it is as far as it now is with me, it will
be too late." Hear the instruction of your, mother: hate every
thing that is loved by the world and your sensuality, and love
God's commandment, and let the same instruct you, for it
teaches, "If any man will come after me, let him deny himself,"
that is, forsake his own wisdom, and pray, "Lord, thy will be
done. If you do this, the anointing of the Holy Ghost will
teach you all that you are to believe. I John 2:27. Believe not
what men say, but obey that which the New Testament commands
.you, and ask God to teach you His will. Trust not in your
understanding, but in the Lord, and let your counsel abide in
Him, and ask Him to direct you into His ways. My child, learn
how you are to love God the Lord, how you are to honor your
father, and all other commandments which the Lord requires of
you. Whatsoever is not contained therein, believe not; but
whatever is contained therein, obey. Join yourself to those
that fear the Lord, and depart from evil, and through love do
all that is good.</p>

<p>Oh, regard not the great multitude, or the ancient custom,
but look at the little flock, which is persecuted for the word
of the Lord, for the good persecute none, but are persecuted.
When you have . joined them, beware of all false doctrine, for
John says, "Whosoever transgresseth, and abideth not in the
doctrine of Christ, hath not God. .He that abideth in the
doctrine of Christ, he hath both the Father and the Son." II
John 9. The doctrine of Christ is mercy, peace, purity, faith,
meekness, humbleness, and full obedience to God.</p>

<p>My dear son, yield yourself to that which is good; the Lord
will give you understanding. I give you this as my last adieu
to you. My dear child, heed the Lord's chastening; for whenever
you do evil, He will chasten you in your mind; desist, then,
and call to the Lord for help, and hate that which is evil, and
the Lord will deliver you, and good will come to you. God the
Father, through His beloved Son Jesus Christ, grant you His
Holy Spirit, that He may guide you into all truth. Amen.</p>

<p>This, I, Maeyken Wens, your mother, have written, while I
was in prison for the Word of the Lord; the good Father grant
you His grace, my son Adriaen. Write me a letter as to what
your heart says, whether you desire to fear the Lord; this I
should like to know. But you must write it better than the last
two letters were written; the one which Maeyken Wils brought
however, was good.</p>

<p>Wherefore, let them that suffer according to the will of God
commit the keeping of their souls to Him in well doing, as unto
a faithful Creator. I Peter 4;19.</p>

<h2>THE FOURTH LETTER FROM MAEYKEN WENS<br />
WRITTEN TO HER SON</h2> 

<p>O my dear son, though I am taken from you here, strive from
your youth to fear God, and you shall have your mother again up
yonder in the New Jerusalem, where parting will be no more. My
dear son, I hope now to go before you; follow me thus as much
as you value your soul, for besides this there shall be found
no other way to salvation. Thus, I will now commend you to the
Lord; may He keep you. I trust the Lord that He will do it, if
you seek Him. Love one another all the days of your life; take
Hansken on your arm now and then for me. And if your father
should be taken from you, care for one another. The Lord keep
<i>you</i> one and all. My dear children, kiss one another once
for me, for remembrance. Adieu, my dear children, all of you.
My dear son, be not afraid of this suffering; it is nothing
compared to that which shall endure forever. The Lord takes
away all fear; I did not know what to do for joy, when I was
sentenced. Hence cease not, to fear God, because of this
temporal death; I cannot fully thank my God for the great grace
which He has shown me. Adieu once more, my dear son Adriaen;
ever be kind, I pray you, to your afflicted father all the days
of your life, and do not grieve him; this I pray all of you,
for what I write to the oldest, I also mean to say to the
youngest. Herewith I will commend you to the Lord once more. I
have written this, after I was sentenced, to die for the
testimony of Jesus Christ, on the fifth day of October, in the
year of our Lord Jesus Christ, 1573.</p>

<p>By me, your mother, who gave you birth in much pain, as a
memorial to you. Preserve well this the adieu which your father
wrote your mother when she had been sentenced, and the adieu of
your mother.</p>

<p class="c5">MAEYKEN WENS.</p>

<p>Fear not them which kill the body.</p>

<h2>THE FIFTH LETTER FROM MAEYKEN WENS, WRIT<br />
TEN TO JAN DE METSER, MINISTER</h2> 

<p><i>Love God above</i> all; <i>He it is who is, and shall
be</i></p>

<p>The rich grace and peace of God the Father, and the love of
Jesus Christ; may He be your comforter. Though we must now die,
we are better off than you who remain in this vale of tears;
however, one must bide the time with patience till the Lord
comes. O my brother in the Lord, I would so gladly have written
you a short letter, but my time has slipped away, although I
have been confined long enough. But I am such a poor writer;
hence you must excuse me, and think, if you were invited to a
table somewhere, would you not certainly be satisfied with that
which was prepared? So you must also be satisfied with my
writing, for I do not have much, and hence I cannot give much.
And now I can also not write much, because I have been
sentenced; nevertheless I was so full of joy, that I should not
be able to express it with the mouth, the</p>

</div><div id="984"> 

<p>Lord be forever praised for, <i>the</i> great grace He has
shown me, who has feared so much. Oh, what a strong God we
have, compared with what we see the wicked have. Oh, let us
have good courage; we shall devour our enemies like bread. I go
before you, tomorrow; the Lord grant you strength, that you may
come to me, as I trust you will. But, my dear brother in the
Lord, always watch, for .the Lord will come as a thief in the
night, when we least expect it, for this was my experience; it,
is good then, that a man be not sleeping. But, .dear Jan, I
should have written you more, but my time of delivery came on
speedily, hence my, flesh begins to tremble somewhat; however
this is the, nature of the flesh. I will herewith commend you
to the Lord, and, to the Word of His grace. Farewell, my dear
friend Jan. I have written you this the night I was sentenced
that you might have something from my hand, for old
acquaintance's sake. Take my simple letter in good part, for I
would not have thought that J could write you so much yet after
I was sentenced. I will now bid, you adieu here in this world;
<i>but</i> I hope .that we shall.see each other up:yonder in
the New Jerusalem, where parting shall be no.more.. However, I
hope that before this letter shall have been read, .I shall
have entered into .rest by the help of the Lord; and I also
hope to be an,epistle. which shall be read <i>of</i> all men.
II Cor. 3:2. Adieu adieu, dear ,friend. Greet your dear wife
much in my name, and tell her that if she has seen aught, in me
which did riot edify her, .not to, follow me therein; but if
she has seen anything that was edifying; to follow that which
is best. This is the good wish <i>of</i> my heart, written to
you on the fifth day,of October, 1573. My fellow prisoners -
also greet you, much.. ,</p>

<p>Written in my bonds, by, me your weak sister, as much as I
am, able, which is but little: .</p>

<p>MAEYKEN WENS.</p>

<p>So persecuted they the prophets.</p>

<br />
 

<h1>FIVE PIOUS CHRISTIANS, HANS VAN MUNSTDORP 
AND JANNEKEN MUNSTDORP. HIS WIFE, TOGETHER WITH MARIKEN, LIJSKEN, AND MAEYKEN, ALL BURNED TOGETHER 
AT STAKES, AT ANTWERP; IN 
THE YEAR 1573</h1> 

<p>The awful murderer's den of the city of Antwerp, though full
of stakes, slain bodies, and the ashes of the saints, was at
this time not yet sated with the many massacres that were
perpetrated:for the sake of the true faith on the innocent
sheep of Christ. This appeared also in the case of five pious
Christians, namely, Hans van Munstdorp and Janneken Munstdorp
his wife, together .with Mariken, Lijsken and .Maeyken. These
were; about the year 1573 while they were gathered to hear the
Word of God, apprehended together and con, fined in the prison
at Antwerp.But when they could in no manner be turned from the
steadfastness of their faith, notwithstanding many terrible
threats, disputations with worldly, learned men, and other
means were used against them, it was determined to put them all
to death, and this not in an easy or short manner, but by fire,
till life' in them, should be extinct.</p>

<p>This was first put into execution on Hans van Munstd6ip,
who, about the month of September of the aforesaid year, was
taken out of the fold, away from the other four, as a sheep for
the slaughter, and; according to the sentence passed, put to
death with a huge fire, which severe and grievous death he
steadfastly endured, with a heart full of good cheer:</p>

<p>The reason why the other four persons were not put to death
with him, was chiefly because his wife Janneken Munstdorp was
very far advanced in pregnancy, and was soon to be delivered,
which</p>

<p>took place shortly after her dear husband was burnt. She was
delivered of a little daughter, whom she, since she was now
also soon to die, named, after her own name, Janneken, and made
great haste to get the child (before the priests should lay
hands on it) to the friends, to whom she heartily commended it,
and also wrote a testament full of excellent instructions to
this little daughter, when she was about a month old, which
testarnent the friends preserved for her.</p>

<p>When the time of her offering up was at hand, <i>so</i> that
she was sentenced on the 6th of October, to follow her husband
by a like death; which message also the other three women,
namely, Mariken, Lijskeiz, and Maeyken, received, for which
they joyfully and willingly prepared themselves, longing for
the hour of their redemption.</p>

<p>This sentence was executed on them at the time and hour
appointed, when they offered up to the Lord a living sacrifice,
holy and acceptable, for which they shall hereafter be exempt
from eternal fire, and permitted to enter into the blessed
enjoyment in the paradise of God. They shall hunger no more,
neither thirst any more; neither shall the sun light on them,
nor any heat. For the Lamb which is .in the midst of the throne
shall feed them, and shall lead them unto living fountains of
waters: and God shall wipe away all tears from their eyes.
Revelation 7:16, 17.</p>

<p>With regard to these sacrificed friends, see a hymn in the
Rotterdam Hymnal, beginning</p>

<p class="c3">Och vrienden al to samen, hoort, Hoe wy op
Bainis-dagh waren verstoort, etc.</p>

<p>NOTE--It appears to us from all the circumstances, that one
of these women, who is called Maeyken, bore the surname Wens,
and that she is the same martyress that has been previously,
noticed, as we have also stated in that place.</p>

</div><div id="985"> 

<h2>A LETTER WHICH HANS VAN
MUNSTDORP WROTE<br />
TO HIS WIFE, WHEN THEY WERE BOTH IN<br />
BONDS IN THE PRISON AT ANTWERP, FOR<br />
THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST</h2>

<p>An affectionate greeting to you my beloved wife whom I love
from the heart, and greatly cherish above every other creature,
and must now forsake for the truth, for the sake of which we
must count all things loss, and love Him above all. I hope,
though men separate us here, that the Lord will again join us
together in His eternal kingdom, where no one will be able to
part us, and we shall reign forever in the heavenly abode.
Hence I inform you, my beloved wife, that my mind is still
unwaveringly fixed to adhere to the eternal truth. [I hope] by
the grace of the Lord, that this is also the purpose of your
mind, which I would be rejoiced to hear. I herewith exhort you
my beloved lamb, with the apostle: As you have received Christ
Jesus the Lord, so walk in Him, rooted and built up in Him, and
established in the faith, and suffer yourself not to be moved
from your purpose through philosophy or vain deceit of men,
whereby they seek to seduce the hearts of the simple, showing
them in fair colors the apple of pleasure, whereby they are
deceived, even as there are some here, as you know. Pierijntgen
has also tasted of the apple, as I understand; hence, my
faithful lamb, take heed and lust not after evil things. I Cor.
10:6. And look not back with Lot's wife, lest you become like
her. Gen. 19:26. Remember the word of the Lord, "No man, having
put his hand to the plough, and looking back, is fit for the
kingdom of God." Luke 9:62. Hence, my beloved lamb, always
remember, as the prophet says, the crown, which shall come in
the end, and of the vengeance that shall come upon the ungodly.
The prophet says, "Woe to the rebellious children that forsake
the Lord, the fountain of life; woe unto them for they that
depart from him shall be written in the earth." Isa. 30:1; Jer.
17:13. Hence, my beloved, hearken not to them, for their work
shall be found wood, straw, and stubble in the day of
vengeance, and it shall be burned with fire, as is written. I
Cor. 3:12, 13. Therefore, my beloved lamb, whom I so
affectionately love and cherish as my own soul, persevere
steadfastly, this I pray you, till you are taken away, as I
trust you will do. And do not regard flesh or blood, for it
must all pass away. Though we have here a rejected and vile
body, the Lord shall fashion it like unto His own glorious
body, on condition that we adhere to the truth unto death.
Phil. 3:21; Rev. 2:10. Take this in good part. Always remember
the eternal riches. I herewith greet you in the Lord, out of
cordial love, and also your companions; rejoice one another in
the Lord, be glad in the lions' den, and trust in the God of
Daniel.</p>

<p>Herewith adieu and farewell. Bide the time with patience; be
patient in the conflict, and rejoice in hope. Let me know, if
you can, whether you havereceived it. Always remember me kindly
in your fervent prayers. I hope also not to forget you, whom I
would carry in my heart, if it were possible. This butter, it
seems to me came from Grietgen Wevels. I greet you most
cordially therewith. Adieu and farewell, my lamb, my love;
adieu and farewell, to all that fear God; adieu and farewell,
until the marriage of the Lamb in the New Jerusalem. Be valiant
and of good cheer; cast the troubles that assail you upon the
Lord, and He will not forsake you; cleave to Him, and you will
not fall. Love God above all; have love and truth; love your
salvation, and keep your promises to the Lord.</p>

<p>OTE.-Through a certain good friend a very affectionate and
consolatory testament of Janneken Munstdorp, the wife of Hans
van Munstdorp, has been put into our hands, which she wrote in
prison at Antwerp, after the offering up of her husband, when
she was in daily expectation of death, to her dear little
daughter-to whom she had given birth in prison, and who was now
only about a month old-for a perpetual remembrance, farewell,
and adieu from this evil world. It reads as follows</p>

<h2>[TESTAMENT] WRITTEN TO JANNEKEN MY OWN DEAREST DAUGHTER, WHILE I WAS (UNWOR THILY) CONFINED FOR THE LORD'S SAKE, IN PRISON, AT ANTWERP, A. D. 1573</h2> 

<p>The true love of God and wisdom of the Father strengthen you
in virtue, my dearest child.; the Lord of heaven and earth, the
God of Abraham, the God of Isaac, and the God of Jacob, the
Lord in Israel, keep you in His virtue, and strengthen and
confirm your understanding in His truth. My dear little child,
I commend you to the Almighty, great and terrible God, who only
is wise, that He will keep you, and let you grow up in His
fear, or that He will take you home in your youth, this is my
heart's request of the Lord: you who are yet so young, and whom
I must leave here in this wicked, evil, perverse world.</p>

<p>Since, then, the Lord has so ordered and foreordained it,
that I must leave you here, and you are here deprived of father
and mother, I will commend you to the Lord; let Him do with you
according to His holy will. He will govern you. and be a Father
to you, so that you shall have no lack here, if you only fear
God; for He will be the Father of the orphans and the Protector
of the widows.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear lamb, I who am imprisoned and bound here for
the Lord's sake, can help you in no other way; I had to leave
your father for the Lord's sake, and could keep him only a
short time. We were permitted to live together only half a
year, after which we were apprehended, because we sought the
salvation of our souls. They took him from me, not knowing my
condition, and I had to remain in imprisonment, and see him go
before me; and it was a great grief to him, that I had to
remain here in prison. And now that I have abided</p>

</div><div id="986"> 

<p>the time, and borne you under my heart with great sorrow for
nine months, and given birth to you here in prison, in great
pain, they have taken you from me. Here I lie, expecting death
every morning, and shall now soon follow your dear father. And
I, your dear mother, write you, my dearest child, something for
a remembrance, that you will thereby remember your dear father
and your dear mother.</p>

<p>Since I am now delivered up to death, and must leave you
here alone, I must through these lines cause you to remember,
that when you have attained your understanding, you endeavor to
fear God, and see and examine why and for whose name we both
died; and be not ashamed to confess us before the world, for
you must know that it is not for the sake of any evil. Hence be
not ashamed of us; it is the way which the prophets and the
apostles went, and the narrow way which leads into eternal
life, for there shall no other way be found by which to be
saved.</p>

<p>Hence, my young lamb, for whose sake I still have, and have
had, great sorrow, seek, when you have attained your
understanding, this narrow way, though there is sometimes much
danger in it according to the flesh, as we may see and read, if
we diligently examine and read the Scriptures, that much is
said concerning the cross of Christ. And there are many in this
world who are enemies of the cross, who seek to be free from it
among the world, and to escape it. But, my dear child, if we
would with Christ seek and inherit salvation, we must also help
bear His cross; and this is the cross which He would have us
bear: to follow His footsteps, and to help bear His reproach;
for Christ Himself says, "Ye shall be persecuted, killed, and
dispersed for my name's sake." Yea, He Himself went before us
in this way of reproach, and left us an example, that we should
follow His steps; for, for His sake all must be forsaken,
father, mother, sister, brother, husband, child, yea, one's own
life.</p>

<p>I must now also forsake all this for the Lord's sake, which
the world is not worthy to suffer; for if we had continued in
the world, we would have had no trouble. For when we were one
with the world and practiced idolatry, and loved all manner of
unrighteousness, we could live at peace with the world; but
when we desired to fear God, and to shun such improper ways,
well knowing that this could not please God, wherefore we
sought to shun all this, and turned from idolatry to the
worship of the living God, and sought here in quietness and
gentleness to practice our ~3ith, then they did not leave us in
peace; then our blood was sought; then we had to be a prey to
everyone, and become a spectacle to all the world. They seek
here to murder and to burn us; we are placed at posts and
stakes, and our flesh is given as food to the worms.</p>

<p>Thus, my dear child, it is now fulfilled in your dear father
and mother. It was indeed prophesied to us beforehand, that
this was awaiting us; but not everyone is chosen hereunto, nor
expects it; theLord has chosen us hereunto. Hence, when you
have attained your understanding, follow this example of your
father and mother. And, my dear child, this is my request of
you, since you are still very little and young; I wrote this
when you were but one month old. As I am soon now to offer up
my sacrifice, by the help of the Lord, I leave you this, "That
you fulfill my request, always uniting with them that fear God;
and do not regard the pomp and boasting of the world, nor the
great multitude, whose way leads to the abyss of hell, but look
at the little flock of Israelites, who have no freedom
anywhere, and must always flee from one land to the other, as
Abraham did; that you may hereafter obtain your fatherland; for
if you seek your salvation, it is easy to perceive which is the
way that leads to life, or the way that leads into hell. Above
all things, seek the kingdom of heaven and His righteousness;
and whatever you need besides shall be added unto you. Matt.
6:33."</p>

<p>Further, my dear child, I pray you, that wherever you live
when you are grown up, and begin to have understanding, you
conduct yourself well and honestly, so that no one need have
cause to complain of you. And always be faithful, taking good
heed not to wrong any one. Learn to carry your hands always
uprightly, and see that you like to work, for Paul says, "If any
will not work, neither shall he eat." II Thess. 3:10. And Peter
says, "He that will love life, and see good days, let him refrain
his tongue from evil." I Pet. 3:10.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear Janneken, do not accustom your mouth to
filthy talk, nor to ugly words that are not proper, nor to
lies; for a liar has no part in the kingdom of heaven; for it
is written, "The mouth that lieth slayeth the soul." Hence
beware of this, and run not in the street as other bad children
do; rather take up a book, and learn to seek there that which
concerns your salvation.</p>

<p>And where you have your home, obey those whose bread you
eat. If they speak evil, do you speak well. And learn always to
love to be doing something; and do not think yourself too good
for any thing, nor exalt yourself, but condescend to the lowly,
and always honor the aged wherever you are.</p>

<p>I leave you here; Oh, that it had pleased the Lord, that I
might have brought you up; I should so gladly have done my best
with respect to it; but it seems that it is not the Lord's
will. And though it had not come thus, and I had remained with
you for a time, the Lord could still take me from you, and
then, too, you should have to be without me, even as it has now
gone with your father and myself, that we could live together
but so short a time, when we were so well joined since the Lord
had so well mated us, that we would not have forsaken each
other for the whole world, and yet we had to leave each other
for the Lord's sake. So I must also leave you here, my dearest
lamb; the Lord that created and made you now takes me from you,
it is His holy will. I must now pass through this narrow way
which the prophets and martyrs of</p>

</div><div id="987"> 

<p>Christ passed through, and many thousands who put off the
mortal clothing; who died here ,.for Christ, and now they wait
under, the altar till their number shall be fulfilled, of which
number your dear father is one. And I am now on the point of
following him, .for I am delivered up to death, as,. it appears
in .the eyes of- man; but if it were not the will of the Lord
(though it seems that I am delivered up to death), He could yet
easily; deliver me out of their hands and give me back to, you,
my child. Even as the Lord returned to -Abraham his son Isaac,
so He could still easily do it; He is still the same God that
delivered Daniel out of the lion's, den, and the three young
men out of ahe fiery furnace; He could still easily deliver me
out of the hands of man.</p>

<p>Now, my child, if this be not. so, I know, that He is
faithful and faithfully:keeps His promise. Thus, my poor orphan
child, always be resigned; though I and your father are now
taken from you; know that you have a Father in heaven, who will
doubtless well provide for you: And when you are old enough,
give diligence to learn to read and write, since it is very
convenient, and most profitable in this distress, for him
that;fears God, that you may sometimes read this letter; a~s
also the other letters, which your father left you;, do: read
them, and remember us both thereby. Dear Janneken, we have not
left you much of this world's goods, and I have now not much to
give you, but what I have I give you. However, we. leave you a
good example to fear God, which is better than much of the
temporal, goods of this world. ,Only: follow us, and you shall
have wealth enough; true, you are poor here, but you shall
possess much wealth, if you only fear God and shun sin. As the
apostle says to the Hebrews, "My son despise. not thou the
chastening of the Lord;for they that would be without
chastisement are bastards, and not sons or heirs." Heb. 12:5.
Hence, my dear lamb, cease not, because of the cross, to fear
God, for a Christian is not made meet except by much
tribulation and persecution upon this world, and we must
through much tribulation enter into the kingdom of God; for
Paul says, "All that will live godly.in Christ Jesus shall
suffer persecution." II Tim. 3:12. And Christ says, "He that
taketh not his cross, and followeth after me; As not worthy of
me; for the servant is not better than his lord, nor the
disciple above his master. If they have called the master of
the house Beelzebub, how much more shall they call them of his
household." Matt. 10:38, 24, 25: If they have persecuted' the
Lord, they will also persecute us; if they have, hated Him,
they will also hate us; and this they do ,because they have not
known my Father, nor me, says the Almighty Lord. For His
kingdom:was not of this world; had His kingdom been of this,
world, the world would have loved Him; but because His .kingdom
was not. of this, world; therefore the world hated Him.' So it
also is now,: since our, kingdom is not of this world, the
world will hate,us; but it is better for us to be despised here
by the world, than Ahat we should hereafter have to mourn
forever. But they that will not taste the bitter here; can
hereafter not expect eternal life; for we know that Paul says,
.that all that will live godly in Christ Jesus shall be
persecuted and be a prey to everyone. .</p>

<p>Thus, my dear child, this way the prophets and apostles and
many thousands of other God-fearing persons went before us, for
an example unto us; and Christ Himself did not spare Himself
for us, but delivered up Himself unto death for our sakes -how
then .should He not give us all things? Hence, my dearest lamb,
seek to follow this way, this I pray you, as much as you value
your salvation; for this is the only way which leads to eternal
life, yea, there is no other way by which we can be saved than
only through Jesus Christ, as Paul says, "Other foundation can no man lay than that is laid, which is
Jesus Christ" (I Cor. 3:11); by whose, stripes we are healed,
and through whose blood we have been dearly purchased; for we
have not been bought with gold or silver, but through His
bitter death, and His precious blood which He shed for us. And
we were as erring sheep in this world, but now ate we redeemed
through His precious and dear blood, and He has now: called us
to be heirs and first-fruits of Christ. All those that have
died unto sin, and amended their lives, and are thus risen with
Christ into newness.of life, these no- longer desire to live to
themselves, but their life belongs to the Lord; if they live,
they live to the Lord; if they die, they, die unto the Lord;
they are so resigned that whether they live or die, they belong
to the Lord. For, my dear lamb, what shall it avail them that
Christ died, who still continue in their sins, and do not turn
from this improper life in which they are still sunk, .as,
drunkards, murderers, adulterers, idolaters, liars, backbiters,
or railers, who cannot please God, whose works proceed only
from the devil, all of which the Lord prohibits and says that
except they amend their lives, they shall not inherit the
kingdom of God? and it shall avail them nothing that He died,
if they will not repent. They would sin upon the grace of God,
but they say not that He is just; He is indeed merciful, .but
He is also just; we may, not sin upon His grace. Though we do
our best to fear the Lord, and to renounce ourselves according
to our ability, yea, though we did all that He commands us,
which we are far from doing, we should only do that which is
commanded us; we must yet confess that we are,unprofitable
servants and have not merited anything,.but are guilty of
eternal death. If He were -not merciful, we could not be saved;
hence we may not sin upon His grace, but always strive
according to our ability to follow that which he commands
us.</p>

<p>My dear lamb; we can merit nothing, but must through grace
inherit salvation; hence always endeayor to fear God, for the
fear of the Lord is the beginning of wisdom, and he that fears
the Lord</p>

</div><div id="988"> 

<p>will do good, and it will be well with him in this world and
in that which is to come. And always join those that seek to
fear the Lord from the heart, and be not conformed to the
world, to do as she does, nor walk in any improper course of
life; for the world shall pass away, and all the nations that
serve her shall perish with her. Nor have fellowship with the
unfruitful works of darkness, but rather reprove them; and be
transformed by the renewing of your life, that you may show
forth the virtues in which God has called you.</p>

<p>O my dearest lamb, that you might know the truth when you
have attained your understanding, and that you might follow
your dear father and mother, who went before you; for your dear
father demonstrated with his blood that it is the genuine
truth, and I also hope to attest the same with my blood, though
flesh and blood must remain on the posts and on the stake, well
knowing that we shall meet hereafter. Do you also follow us my
dear lamb, that you too may come where we shall be, and that we
may find one another there, where the Lord shall say, "Come, ye
blessed of my Father, inherit the kingdom prepared for you from
the beginning."</p>

<p>Then our joy shall not be taken from us. Though they have
separated us here, so that we are taken from you, and must go
before you, know that it was the Lord's will; if it had been
His pleasure, He could easily have ordered it otherwise.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear child, be content; He knows what He has
determined concerning you, that I must leave you here. Always
be honorable and courteous toward all men, and let your modesty
be manifest to all men when you have attained to your
understanding.</p>

<p>I leave you here among my friends; I hope that my father,
and my step-mother, and my brothers, and my sisters will do the
best with you as long as they live. Be subject and obedient to
them in every thing, so far as it is not contrary to God. I
leave you what comes from my mother's death, namely, thirty
guilders and over; I do not know how much it is, since I have
been long imprisoned here, and do not know what it has all
cost. But I hope that Grietge, my dear sister, who has shown me
so much friendship, will do her best to give you what belongs
to you. And as to what may come to you from your father, I do
not know, since I can learn nothing about his parents, because
it is so far from here; if they should inquire after you, my
friends may do the best in the matter.</p>

<p>And now, Janneken, my dear lamb, who are yet very little and
young, I leave you this letter, together with a gold real,
which I had with me in prison, and this I leave you for a
perpetual adieu, and for a testament; that you may remember me
by it, as also by this letter. Read it, when you have
understanding, and keep it as long as you live in remembrance
of me and of your father, if peradventure you might be edified
by it. And I herewith bid you adieu, my dear Janneken
Munstdorp,and kiss you heartily, my dear lamb, with a perpetual
kiss of peace. Follow me and your father, and be not ashamed to
confess us before the world, for we were not ashamed to confess
our faith before the world, and this adulterous generation;
hence I pray you, that you be not ashamed to confess our faith,
since it is the true evangelical faith, an other than which
shall never be found.</p>

<p>Let it be your glory, that we did not die for any evil
doing, and strive to do likewise, though they should also seek
to kill you. And on no account cease to love God above all, for
no one can prevent you from fearing God. If you follow that
which is good, and seek peace, and ensue it, you shall receive
the crown of eternal life; this crown I wish you and the
crucified, bleeding, naked, despised, rejected and slain Jesus
Christ for your bridegroom.</p>

<p>This I wish you for a perpetual testament, and for a
perpetual adieu and farewell my dearest lamb.</p>

<p>Remember thereby your dear father, and me, your dear mother,
who have written this with my own hand, for your edification;
and always keep this gold real with you, with this letter, for
a perpetual testament: I herewith bid you adieu and farewell; I
hope to seal this letter with my blood at the stake.</p>

<p>I herewith commend you to the Lord, and to the comforting
Word of His grace, and bid you adieu once more. I hope to wait
for you; follow me, my dearest child.</p>

<p>Once more, adieu, my dearest upon earth; adieu, and nothing
more; adieu, follow me; adieu and farewell.</p>

<p>Written on the 10th of August, A. D. 1573, at Antwerp.</p>

<p>This is the testament which I wrote in prison for my
daughter Janneken, whom I bore and gave birth to here in my
bonds.</p>

<p>By me your dearest mother, imprisoned for the Lord's
sake.</p>

<p class="c5">JANNEKEN MUNSTDORP.</p>

<p>OTE.-With this testament we also received a letter which the
same Janneken van Munstdorp wrote to her dear father and
mother, who, as it seems, had not yet come to the true faith;
who are by her exhorted to the best, and to whom she in the
meantime commends her little child.</p>

<h2>COPY OF A LETTER BY JANNEKEN MUNSTDORP'S<br />
OWN HAND, WRITTEN AT ANTWERP IN PRISON<br />
TO HER FATHER AND MOTHER, ON THE 19TH<br />
OF SEPTEMBER, A. D. 1573</h2> 

<p>My dear father and my dear mother, I wish you a true
understanding, and a contrite spirit in your hearts, to fear
God, for an affectionate greeting.</p>

<p>After all cordial and proper salutation, I now leave you my
dear and most affectionately beloved father and dear, beloved
mother, without forgetting all my dear brothers and sisters,
whom I must now leave for the Lord's sake, and I expect not to
see your faces any more in this world, because I</p>

</div><div id="989"> 

<p>am imprisoned and bound here, and this for the Lord's sake,
and am daily expecting to be sentenced to death.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear father, since the Lord through His great
grace has still given me time to write you a little, I am
prompted to inform you concerning my bodily health; hence I
write to you, that I am still tolerably well according to the
flesh, and after the spirit I am still determined to adhere to
the living, almighty, eternal God, and not to depart from Him
for any tortures which they may inflict upon me, for it is
written, "Whosoever shall confess me before men, him will I
confess also before my Father which is in heaven." Hence I know
that this God will deliver me out of all this sorrow, if I only
remain faithful to Him, and seek no other God beside Him; I
therefore hope that He will help me finish the good work begun
by Him in me, that His name through me may be praised.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear father and mother, I would from the heart
that it were also with you according to the spirit, as it is
still with me at this present time</p>

<p>it would be a great joy to me, if you should yet come to
fear the Lord. Oh, that you might yet at the last hour work in
the Lord's vineyard; though you seem to be free, and are not
imprisoned, you are not certain of a single hour as to how long
you will live.</p>

<p>Therefore, my love, you also are commanded to watch, for in
the last day you will have no excuse that you can make, that
you did not know which is the narrow way that leads to eternal
life, of which Esdras speaks, on the one side of which there is
water, and on the other side fire; and there are many that know
this way, but few that walk it.</p>

<p>Thus, dear father and mother, water and fire are set before
us, and we may choose which we will, life or death. Hence, dear
father, we have here in this life sought the salvation of our
souls, that we may exchange this death for eternal life, this
corruptible for the incorruptible; for the sufferings of this
world are not worthy to be compared with the glory that shall
be revealed to us. Though we are here robbed of all men, and
accounted as a sport and spectacle to all the world, they shall
yet have to confess in the last day that they shed the innocent
blood; they shall then see whom they have pierced. Though we
are here accounted poor, we shall yet have much wealth, if we
fear God and shun sin.</p>

<p>Hence, my dear father and mother, though you must now
sometimes hear that I am imprisoned for a base sect, or
heretical doctrine, which I presume is said and has been
said,-many things are said about us, which are not true,-you
well know that it is not for any evil, but that it is only for
the sake of our salvation. Though we are despised here, it is
nevertheless the genuine truth, and there shall never any other
be found; I have sought nothing else herein.</p>

<p>If I did not want to be saved, I should seek an easy life as
gladly as others; for he that would fearGod must expect all
these, tribulation, suffering, bonds, and imprisonment, and we
can nowhere have a free place; for it is given unto us not only
to believe in God, but also to suffer for His name. Hence, my
dear father and mother, though I must here die for Christ's
sake, and men say all manner of evil about me, let it not cause
you sorrow; for if they have called the Lord Beelzebub, how
much more them that believe in Him? Hence be not surprised, and
only deal kindly with my little child, which I bore and gave
birth to in great sorrow here in my bonds, which I love as my
own soul, so that I can not write of it without tears, when I
think of my dear husband, of whom I bore it, and that I must
now leave it here. But the Lord knows why He has so ordered it
that I had to leave here a little orphan child. I commend it to
you, and to Him who created and made it; I trust that He will
not suffer it to be wronged, though it is here deprived of
father and mother. The Lord well knows how I bore it, and for
whose sake it was; hence, exercise a parental care for it, my
dear father and you dear mother; as long as you live show the
love which you bear to me to my dear child; he that loves the
tree, will also love the branches.</p>

<p>Oh, oh I that the Lord would take it, what a great joy it
would be to me, since I mutt die. O that it had been the will
of the Lord, that I could yet have brought it up, in what great
regard I should have held it for my dear husband's sake; though
I should have suffered want with it, I should not have parted
with it; but the will of the Lord be done. I am possibly not
fit to offer up a sacrifice to the Lord; He has perhaps some
purpose with me, that He still suffers me to be confined here.
I did not think that I would remain in confinement here so
long. Hence, dear father, I was much afraid of long
imprisonment, and it has now come upon me, which greatly
grieves me, as I well know that the expense here is very great,
and that I am a great burden to my sister; for she has great
trouble and expense here, though I know that she does it gladly
from the heart. But, my dear father, I know that her ability is
not great, and yet I do not know how to thank her fully for it,
nor have I ever merited from her, what she has shown and given
me; for she has shown her love in time of need-one sometimes
has friends indeed, till he needs them. In time of need one
will know his friends. Oh, that I had been taken away at the
first, that you would not have needed to have any expense on my
account. But, my dear father and mother, I hope that you will
not leave me in need; I hope that you will help my sister in
paying for the board, though I wrote you in the letter, that it
should remain, that you should keep it for my child.</p>

<p>My father, you might well think that we did not have much to
live on, since we did not have much when we were married, and
our married life did not last long. Therefore I thought that
you should keep that which was, though it is not much, for my
child; and since you wrote that my sister would</p>

</div><div id="990"> 

<p>care for me, I thought that you were helping me therein,
though my sister has done her best to help me, and I know that
it is a great burden for her. And they have given me much, that
I should not go into the dungeon, which I was willing to do,
because it lasts so long, and the expense here is so great,
though one is also not confined without expense in the dungeon,
in which one also can not see; hence they do not wish to leave
me in want, nor to let me go into the dungeon because of the
money.</p>

<p>Further, dear father, I inform you that I sent letters with
Hans van der Dam, but I have not yet received an answer. If I
am taken hence, snake inquiries whether there is still anything
left; it would come my child in good stead. I also wrote my
child a testament, to remember me and its father by it. When it
attains to the years of understanding, and you are still alive,
cause it to read the same sometimes, that it may know why its
father and mother died. Further, dear father, I know nothing
special to write you; but if I should write you no more, and I
should soon enter on my journey, write me a letter speedily,
how it is with you and my child; and if you should hear from
Hans, have my brother Passchier write a letter to send to his
father.</p>

<p>Nothing special for this time, but I herewith take leave and
farewell from you my dear father and mother, and from all my
dear brothers and sisters; and for my sake do not forget my
dear child; always remember me by it. Once more adieu; greet my
lady very heartily, and tell her I thank her much for all the
favor she has shown me; the Lord will leave no good deed
unrewarded. Herewith farewell; kiss my child for me, and often
visit it. And greet Pleuntjen and Lieven most cordially in my
name, and tell them that I request them to do the best with the
child, for I have the confidence concerning them that they love
it for my sake, for it is a pledge of love, which I love more
than all else that is upon the earth. I hope now soon to follow
my husband, if it is the Lord's will. Oh, that I might have
died with him, to obtain the kingdom of God together with him.
Herewith farewell, my dear father and mother; I commend you to
God.</p>

<p>By me, your dear daughter, imprisoned at Antwerp for the
testimony of Jesus Christ.</p>

<p class="c5">JANNEKEN MUNSTDORP.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER LETTER FROM JANNEKEN MUNSTDORP,<br />
WIFE OF HANS VAN MUNSTDORP, TO HER SISTER;<br />
WRITTEN WHEN SHE WAS CONFINED IN PRISON<br />
AT ANTWERP, FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS<br />
CHRIST, AND SENTENCED WITH THREE<br />
OTHERS TO BE BURNT; WRITTEN AT ONE<br />
O'CLOCK IN THE NIGHT, THE 5TH OF<br />
OCTOBER, IN THE YEAR Off' OUR<br />
LORD 1573</h2> 

<p>The abundant and unspeakable great grace of the Father, and
the mercy of God, and the loving kindness and love of the Son;
with the communion ofthe Holy Ghost, who through grace has been
sen us by the Father, through the name of our Lor Jesus Christ,
to the comfort and joy of all faithful true children of God, by
whom we are all guided taught and instructed; the same keep
your under standing, heart and mind in Christ Jesus, to th
praise and glory of the Father, to the salvation o your soul,
and to the edification of all dear brethre and sisters that
fear the Lord and love the truth The same God, who only is
wise, make you fi hereunto, to whom be glory, honor and power
might and strength, forever and ever, Amen, an for a perpetual
adieu. After this, my heart's wis from God, for an adieu, and a
perpetual farewel to you, my dear brethren in God, and to you,
m very dear and chosen, affectionately beloved sis. ters [I
would say that] the time has now com that we must part from one
another; I shall now b freed from all sorrow; sorrowing and
sighing shal befall me no more. My dear friends, adieu, adieu
we must now part here. Though the Lord has s ordered it with
me, I am yet constrained to writ you once more for the last
time. True, I hav written you adieu, but now it goes to my
heart sentence has been passed upon me that I must die I said
to them, that they should take good heed</p>

<p>that our blood should be severely required at thei hands.
They said they did not do it, that it was th decree of the
king. I said that this would not sav them, but the Lord forgive
you if you do it igno rantly; but I think that you, in part,
know wel enough what kind of people we are. They washe their
hands from it. I said, "Pilate did so too.' They said that
Pilate was a just judge, and that w acted contrary to the
king's command. I said tha we had greater reason to obey God,
than the king it is a little matter that you inflict this
tempora death upon us, for we know not how long we shal live,
but we know that we must certainly die sometime; and I said
that they should take good hee with regard to shedding innocent
blood. Thus w four were sentenced, and it will now soon be over
with us. My dear brothers and sisters, the Lor has heard me,
that I am permitted to offer up</p>

<p>sacrifice for His name. I did not think that the Lor did so
love me; I have certainly never merited i of Him; but He will
make me fit hereunto throug His grace. Oh, what a strong helper
in distress w have, who does not let us be confounded. Ho short
has seemed to me the time that I have bee here, whereas I was
previously so afraid of it; an that He has so faithfully
succored me in all my distress, and now makes me so happy that
I kno nothing to say of sadness. Oh, oh! how strong i our God;
who should not want to fear Him? o whom will we be afraid? God
is with us; who ca be against us? At all events we must here
leav everything behind. I may well say that there wa never more
joy in my heart, than I had when I wa sentenced. My dear
sister, fear not men who mus pass away like grass; for they can
do no more that the Lord permits them. My dear brethren and
sis</p>

</div><div id="991"> 

<p>ters, be not afraid; if the Lord had permitted them, they
would not have waited with me so long; but now the Lord permits
them. I am well pleased with it, that they shall remove me out
of this evil, wicked world, from the evil that I might yet have
had in it, so that I shall not be moved; for I expect no joy in
this world, because of my dear husband, who went this way
before me, and whom, by the graceof the Lord, I am now to
follow, having long waited for this time. I also go before you
now; follow me. This is the narrow way which the prophets and
apostles went, who also had to drink the cup which we must now
drink. We shall now soon have passed through this wilderness,
as soon as we have drunk the bitter waters. Ex. 15:23. The time
of travail is now at hand; weeping and mourning shall then be
over. Oh, what a joy this is in my heart, so that I cannot
describe it to you: Oh, how mightily the Lord works in us poor,
weak vessels; for I know that I have never merited it from the
Lord, but am worthy of nothing but eternal death. If the Lord
would enter into judgment with me, I should in no wise be
saved; but now I must expect salvation out of pure grace, and I
doubt not that He will remember my past sins no more, as the
prophet says, "When a sinner turns away from his wicked life,
and does righteousness, he will re member his unrighteousness
no more." Ezek. 18: 21, 27.</p>

<p>O my dear and much beloved, chosen sister, whom I greatly
love from the heart and this out of a godly love, you have
shown me so much friendship, and assisted me in need, that I
cannot fully requite you, since I am now but a poor, weak
creature, and about to pay all that I owe, whether according to
the flesh or according, to the spirit. Hence, my dear sister, I
cannot reward you, but I thank you very heartily (writing you
still some more) for all that you have ever shown me. O dear
sister, you write me that I should forgive you what you may
have done amiss to me; O my dear sister, you have done nothing
amiss, to me, but know that I fall short to you in many tings;
but I trust that you will bury it with me, and remember it no
more. I know that I fall short in everything; but Christ died,
to pay for that in which we fall short. Did He not die a bitter
death for us, whereas He was without spot or wrinkle, and no
guile was found in His mouth; how should we then not gladly die
for a righteous man? hence let us not spare ourselves, but
willingly go into death for the name of Christ, and not fear
what men can do to us. Rom. 5:7; Heb. 13:6.</p>

<p>And, my dear, brother and sister, be of good cheer; though
men put us to death, it is the will of the Lord. Pray, do not
sorrow for me any more; for I know that you have great sorrow
on my account. It is now all over; I shall soon have conquered
my last enemy, and be able to 'say with Paul, "I have fought a
good fight, I have finished my course, I have kept the faith:
henceforth thereis laid up for me a crown of righteousness." I
Corinthians 15:26; II Tim. 4:7, 8.</p>

<p>I shall soon be an epistle to you, which may be read of all
men. II Cor. 3:2. And, my dear sister, though we must part
here, know that it is .for something better; we have neither
hour nor time. It is so glorious to die for His name, and Peter
says, "Rejoice if you suffer and endure for well-doing; this is
acceptable with God." I Pet. 4:14; 3:17; 2:20.</p>

<p>But, my dear sister, it is now my turn; it may very soon,
perhaps tomorrow, be your turn; be of good courage, and
patiently abide your time, my dearest sister. You write me in
regard to my child; I have confidence in you that you will do
your best with it, I have committed it to the Lord, to do His
good pleasure with it, and to move your heart to it. For, dear
sister, I trust that you love me from the heart, and they that
love the tree will also love the branches. I read your letter
again with tears, when I heard that you were so sad on my
account, and that I was so joyful.</p>

<p>O my dear sister, how glad I was that I -had kissed you once
more. Grieve not, that you have not visited me more; I did not
take it amiss, for I well know that you did not lack the will:
my dear sister, you have done so much for me. O my dear brother
and sister, I would write you more yet, of the hope that is now
in me, but I cannot write you so much; it is much greater still
[than I have described to you]. I hope that, you will take this
in good part, and will herewith bid you a perpetual adieu; and
do the best with each other. And you, my dear brother, pray,
comfort my dear sister in her tribulation which she has on my
account, for I love her from the bottom of my heart. Parting is
grievous according to the flesh, but according to the spirit I
thank and praise the Lord, that I am permitted to offer up such
a sacrifice, which can be acceptable to him; yea, that I can
offer up my flesh and blood at the stake. Gladly I give it to
Him that gave . it me; though I had seven bodies; I should
gladly deliver them up for the Lord's 'sake. Pray the Lord
heartily for me, that I may now make strait paths for my feet,
to the edification of all dear brethren and sisters. Herewith
adieu. I have sent knit-needles for my daughter; keep them, and
do the best with her. I also leave you here a poor little
orphan without father or mother: the Lord be your dear' Father,
and I commend you to Him that created and made you. My sister,
I wish you would keep my lamb in remembrance of me, and I sent
some sugar for you and your daughter, of 'which I ate when I
was sentenced; and thank Engel much in my name for the pot of
wine, and tell him adieu. I know nothing special now to commit
to you, but do the best with my young lamb; the Lord will not
leave unrewarded what you do for His name. Bid my father and
mother, my dear brethren and sisters, adieu and farewell; adieu
and farewell to all; farewell'to my dear brethren and'chosen
sisters, whom I love from the depth of</p>

</div><div id="992"> 

<p>my heart; I greet you once more with the holy kiss of peace,
as though I were present with you; kiss one another. My fellow
sisters who are with me also greet you, and have kissed me once
for you, and I have done the same for you. My 'dear, chosen
brethren and dear sisters, weary not of Jesus Christ. I hope to
go before you yet to the heavenly city, to wait for you under
the altar with all the chosen saints; follow me. My dear chosen
sister, I must now go before you, where I shall enjoy bliss.
Adieu, sister dear; remember me still; the time of travail is
at hand, to offer up my sacrifice at the stake, much beloved.
Herewith I commend you to the Lord.</p>

<p>I shall seal this with my blood. Adieu, adieu, my dearest
brethren and sisters, with your little lamb, and also mine,
which I bore under my heart. I have written this for you yet
after I was sentenced, after one o'clock in the night; however,
it was not irksome to me. I take leave and bid you adieu once
more, till we meet hereafter, where men shall separate us no
more. Adieu, till we together drink the new wine which Christ
shall give us at His table. Matt. 26:29. This other letter is
from Augustijn, who sent it to me. Adieu, adieu, all of you
adieu. I shall follow Hans, my dear husband. The lady with her
midwife, and her nurse are going now, and shall receive a like
reward. Nothing more from me, but adieu for the last time.
Follow me.</p>

<p>Fear God; this is the conclusion.</p>

<br />

<h1>SUSANNEKEN AND KALLEKEN CLAES, A. D. 1573</h1> 

<p>In the year 1573, at Ghent, in Flanders, there were also
apprehended, for following Christ, two sisters, young maidens,
named Susanneken and Kalleken Claes, or Draeyaerts, the former
aged about twenty-six, and the other about twenty-four years.
While imprisoned in the Saucelet, the city prison, they had to
suffer many entreaties. and afflictions from the enemies of the
truthin all of which they steadfastly adhered to their only
Shepherd, Lord, and the Author of their faith, to help them
bear His bloody banner, His cross, and reproach, and, as
courageous heroines, to strive valiantly unto death, which they
had to taste for His name; for as they remained steadfast, and
would in no wise depart from the divine truth, nor from the
true faith, upon which they, according to Christ's ordinance,
had received baptism, ,they were finally sentenced to death as
heretics, and, on the 4th of December of the aforesaid year,
and with balls tied into their mouths, to prevent them from
speaking or confessing with their mouths. the cause of their
innocent, fearless, voluntary.and God-pleasing death and
sacrifice, they were brought into the Friday market, and there
publicly burned at the stake, going thus with burning lamps,
and the oil of love in their vessels, to meet their Forerunner
and Bridegroom, who will let thetp,1~, as wise virgins, to His
marriage, when the foolishshall knock and not be heard, and,
with too late repentance and sorrow of heart, shall have to
remain excluded.</p>

<h2>ANTHONIS YSBAERTS, A. D. 1573</h2> 

<p>While the Duke of Alva so dreadfully persecuted, and
tyrannized over, the believers, there was also apprehended and
put to death, for his faith and the practice of the truth, at
Tielt, in Flanders, one Anthonis Ysbaerts, who had been a
servant of the High Bailiff of Ghent, and consequently often
attended the executions of the saints, where he did not always
with a sin-desiring, unconcerned, vain mind, nor with blinded
eyes, behold the invincible steadfastness in the faith, and
the;joyful peace of mind, of the Christians, who in the midst
of their innocent sufferings undauntedly confessed, proclaimed
and magnified the name of God; but he was finally so stirred
and troubled by it in his heart, that he forsook not only the
service of his temporal lord, but also the worship of idols,
and betook himself henceforth to become a servant of God,
notwithstanding he had many times witnessed what had befallen
others on this account, [and knew] that he had to expect the
same, as it also occurred with him.</p>

<p>As soon as he had betaken himself to hear the word of God,
and to follow Christ, and so advanced therein, that he was
considered worthy to receive baptism upon his faith, and to be
received as a fellow member of the church of Christ, he had to
flee the country, and thus went to Vriesland, where he, not
being conversant with any. trade, could earn only a very
precarious living. In the meantime it happened that a brother
who had also fled from Tielt (mentioned above) on account of
his faith, and come to live in Vriesland, and who had left
behind much property, hired this Anthonis, and sent him to
Tielt, to arrange his unsettled affairs, and save his effects
and convey them to him, as much as he conveniently could. When
he had attended to all the things with which he had been
charged, and was just on the point of returning to Vriesland,
the bailiff of Tielt came to him, and asked him, whether he did
not belong to the same people as those that had sent him out,
which when he did not dare deny, the bailiff sent for his
beadles, and had him conducted to 'prison, where he had to
resist not a little vexation and torment; but when he, in all
things, steadfastly adhered to the accepted truth, he was
finally, pursuant to the king's decree, sentenced to death, to
be burnt alive as a heretic.</p>

<p>This sentence having been read to him, he requested
permission to speak a word, and this being granted, he asked
the lords whether they did not think that such a sentence was
too cruel for him, who had not done anything amiss to any one.
This produced such a commotion among the judges, that they held
a consultation and concluded that he should first be strangled,
and then burnt.- He thanked -them that they had shown him so
much mercy.</p>

</div><div id="993"> 

<p>There was also with him one Friar Pieter de Backer, who
sought to converse much with him, in order to cause him to
apostatize, but he mostly refused all he said, finally
saying, "Let me alone; my heart is of good cheer, my departure
is very near at hand, for the bell which is striking now shall
not strike another time before I hope to have offered up my
sacrifice, and to be at home with my Redeemer, in whom all my
hope and confidence rests."</p>

<p>He was therefore brought forth to die, in very mean attire,
for which he had exchanged his own clothes, which were better,
giving the latter to one who was imprisoned for his crime, and
was shortly to be released.</p>

<p>When he came to the stake where he was to offer up his
sacrifice, he kneeled down and offered up an earnest prayer to
God, and then voluntarily prepared himself for death. But when
the executioner was to strangle him, he could not find his
twistingstick; hence the bailiff with his sword cut off a piece
from the torch which they had to light the fire, that it might
be used for a twistingstick. Thereupon he, commending his
spirit into the hands of God, sweetly fell asleep in the Lord,
and when he had been strangled, the fire was lighted to burn
him. And just as this was taking place, there arose such a
terrible storm, that many people were frightened, and were of
the opinion that God thereby meant to show His displeasure upon
the tyranny inflicted upon His elect.</p>

<h2>FIFTY-FOUR PERSONS, BRETHREN AS WELL AS SISTERS, NAMELY, THIRTY-SEVEN AT ANTWERP AND SEVENTEEN AT BRUSSELS, VERY UNMERCIFULLY BURNT FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS CHRIST, IN THE YEAR 1574</h2> 

<p>After manifold and long tyranny, torturing, murdering and
killing of the children of God, it further occurred, in the
year 1574, through the order of the most dreadful, bloodthirsty
tyrant, the Duke of Alva, that there were apprehended, in a
meeting, at Antwerp, in Brabant, thirty-seven persons, and at
Brussels, in Brabant, at one time, seventeen persons, men,
women, widows, and young maidens, who, in the places stated
here, were very severely confined, and tortured and examined
with dreadful tyranny, to cause them to apostatize from the
truth of the holy Gospel, and from following Christ, and to
obey again the papistic superstitions, together with all their
trumpery of human ordinances and commandments militating
against God. Especially were they dreadfully tyrannized and
tortured, that they should inform against their fellow
believers, and deliver them up into the hands of the
executioners and torturers, since they were by no means sated
yet, but greatly thirsted after more innocent blood. But these
valiant heroes and men of God courageously resisted and
overcame, through faith and the invincible power of God(which
was in them), the subtle and tyrannical wiles of the devil.
Hence the blind scribes declared them heretics, and delivered
them into the hands of the secular authorities. These, made
drunk with the wine of the Babylonian whore, allowed
themselves, this and many other times, to be used as the
executioners and obedient servants of these idolatrous priests
and monks, and caused all these fifty-four persons to be
unmercifully burnt, at different times, so that they all died
steadfastly, and scattered and confirmed the faith of the
eternal truth with their death and blood. And though open
thieves and murderers were permitted to open their mouths and
confess to the bystanding people their distress, as also to
call upon the God of heaven for forgiveness of their sins, yet
the awful tyranny and envy against the true children of God
were so great, that this was frequently denied them, and to
this end they filled the mouths of the pious witnesses of God
with gags and balls, so that they were not able to proclaim to
the by-standing people their innocence and the true reason why
they suffered this. But the priests and monks having noticed
that these pious men of God, when they came to the place of
execution, freed themselves from these gags and balls, and
spoke to the people from the word of God; the monks, in order
to prevent this, had instruments made resembling vises, between
which they made the prisoners stick their tongues, which they
then had screwed fast, and the tips thereof touched with a
red-hot iron, that they should swell up and thus not slip back.
And this new and abominable invention of the monks, these
tyrants, to their own perpetual shame, used on the persons
mentioned here.</p>

<p>All this these true witnesses of Jesus suffered, and were,
as humble sheep and lambs of Christ, led to the slaughter, who
did not resist, but were thus unjustly put to death by them.
But this deed, it is to be feared, will at the coming of
Christ, when it will be too late to repent, exceedingly smart
their eyes; while these brave heroes and heroines who so
valiantly strove for the name of the Lord, will by their
Bridegroom Christ Jesus upon mount Zion, be rewarded with the
crown of eternal glory; for the fight is now fought, and they
are now resting under the altar.</p>

<p>Whoever will, let him read Emanuel van Meteren, the laudable
historian of the High Lords States; printed A. D. 1614. On page
99 this matter will be found verified.</p>

<h2>ADRIAEN HOEDEMAECKER AND MATTHEUS KEUSE,<br />
A. D. 1574</h2> 

<p>At Bruges, in Flanders, in the year 1574, there were also
apprehended for following and practicing the doctrine of Christ
and His apostles, one Adriaen Hoedemaecker, called Kort
Adriaentgen [Short Adrian] of Ghent, and one Mattheus Keuse,
and after they had been in confinement for a time, they were,
for the steadfast confession of their</p>

</div><div id="994"> 

<p style="font-style: normal"><br /></p>

<p>faith, sentenced to be burned. When they cane upon the
scaffold, to offer up their sacrifice, the priest addressed
several remarks to them, whereupon the executioner said to
him, "Attend to your preaching." The executioner then kissed
these brethren, and comforted them with the Word of God,
hearing which the priest or confessor said to him, "Attend to
your office; for preaching is my business." After this and
other things, these two brethren boldly offered up their burnt
sacrifice to the Lord, and commended their souls into His
hands, thus taking their departure out of this vale of tears;
to enter into the eternal joy with God and all His saints.</p>

<h2>HANS PELTNER, A. D. 1574</h2> <br />

<p>In the year 1574, Hans Peltner, a tailor, at Rottenhosen in
Imtal, was apprehended for his faith, and the divine truth, who
had tcr;endure many disputations and temptations, from the
priests as well as others, all of which he very valiantly
resisted, and with the Word of God testified to the truth, to
which he by the help of God would adhere unto death. On this
account he was finally sentenced to death, and conducted forth to the place of execution, where
he exhorted the people to desist from sin and repent. He then
kneeled down, turning his face to the East, or the rising of
the sun, lifted up his hands to heaven, and poured out an
earnest prayer to God his heavenly Father, thanking and
praising Him for all the grace and benefits shown him and that
He had made him worthy to suffer for His name. He also prayed
for all men who were worthy, that God would put repentance and
amendment into their hearts. Finally he commended his spirit
into the hands of God, for whose name he was willing to offer
up again his life and body (which he had received from Him),
and to testify to His truth even to his last drop of blood, as
he had promised Him in baptism, and would thus expect to be
received of Him into His gracious arms.</p>

<p>This prayer was too long.for the executioner's patience, for
he wanted him to shorten it; but the judges said that he should
let him pray to his heart's content, since it was his last
time.</p>

<p>When he had finished praying, he rose and went boldly toward
the executioner, so that neither his face nor his color
changed, but he knelt down again</p>

<p style="font-style: normal; font-weight: medium"><br /></p>

</div><div id="995"> 

<p>so intrepidly, that the executioner was consternated by his
valiant praying and undaunted mind, and became afraid to
execute him.</p>

<p>When the executioner removed the collar front his neck,
previous to seizing his sword, he asked him once more, whether
he would renounce; but he would not. Thereupon the executioner
proceeded, beheaded him, and then burned his dead body. Thus
this Christian hero freely testified to the truth with his
blood, and in no wise suffered himself to be separated from the
way of eternal life in Christ. Hence the Lord, the judge of
.the living and the dead, who holds in His hand the judgment
and the souls of them that have died for the faith, shall raise
him up at the last day, and cause him to appear before Him,
where he shall inherit a martyr's crown and all that God has
promised His own.</p>

<br />

<h1>REYTSE AYSESS OF OLDENBORN PUT TO DEATH FOR THE TESTIMONY OF JESUS. CHRIST, AT LEEUWAERDEN, ON THE 23D OF APRIL, IN THE YEAR 1574, TOGETHER WITH VARIOUS LETTERS WRITTEN BY HIM WHILE IMPRISONED AT THAT PLACE</h1> 

<p><i>The first letter of Reytse Aysess, written in
his prison, how he was betrayed, apprehended and put into bonds by the bailiff, called Andries Grief, and boldly and fearlessly acknowledged and confessed his faith</i></p>

<p>It happened in the year 1573, the 18th of September, that I
came to Oldenborn, where I met the bailiff, who requested me to
go with him, saying that he had something to tell me. When we
had entered his house, he asked me where I lived: I replied, "In
Bechsterswaegh." He then asked me how old I was; I said that I
did not know it accurately. He further asked me where I had
stayed over night. I said, "In my father's house." He asked me
whether H. had not been there; to which I made no reply. Then
he urged me so hard in regard to it, that I finally said,"Yes."
He then asked me concerning many others. I kept silence for a
long time. Finally, after many temptations, I said that W. had
also been there, and that formerly we had been very intimate
friends; and after some other conversation which we had
together I was silent. He then put fetters on me, and wanted to
instruct me from the ancient fathers of fifteen hundred years
ago, and from other writings not contained in the New
Testament. I said that I would accept no other writings than
the New Testament.</p>

<p>The next day, in the morning, the substitute of Leeuwaerden
came, who tempted me very much, to tell who all had been at my
father's house; but the almighty God kept my lips. Hence .they
took me to Leeuwaerden, and cast me into a dungeon, in which
there were eight who cared nothing for God. There I at first
became very sorrowful, and day and night called upon the
Almighty God, that Hewould keep me; and He enlightened my
heart, for which I praise and thank the eternal Father for His
great benefits shown me. After I had been confined there five
days, they brought me into another prison, to a lord, for which
I praised and thanked God.</p>

<h2>DIVERS EXAMINATIONS OF REYTSE AYSESS BEFORE<br />
THE COMMISSARY, PASTORS, PRIESTS,<br />
BISHOPS, AND OTHERS</h2> 

<p>On the sixth day they brought me before the commissary, and
in going thither there met me an old man, who bade me"good
evening." I returned the compliment, however was frightened
when I saw him. But he said to me, "You have a bad commissary";
and he conversed much more with me, and instructed me how I
should answer the commissary; and so I went in.</p>

<p>The commissary bade me"Good day," and 1 wished him the same.
He then asked me, "What is your business here?" I replied, "I
have been brought here against my will." He further asked what
I believed. <i>Ans."I</i> believe in God almighty; and that
there is but one Lord, one faith, and one baptism, by which we
can be saved." He said that he also believed that, but that I
was seduced. I said, "Is God then a seducer?" <i>Conantissary."No;</i> but you
have been seduced by Menno and other seducers." I said that I
did not rely on men, but on the word of the Lord. He said that
I should suffer myself to be instructed by the holy Catholic
Church, since God Himself had ordained apostles, doctors
[teachers] and pastors. I said that I believed nothing but the
Word of God and the New Testament. He then asked me, whether I
was baptized. I said, "Yes, upon my faith, as Christ has
commanded." He then made a long speech, that Christ had
received flesh and blood from Mary, and that I must believe
this; and many other words we had together. He then asked me,
when I had been to confession and the sacrament the last time.
I replied, "Never in my life;" and many other remarks we had
together. Thus he admonished me, that I should suffer myself to
be instructed by the holy church, and then he went away. This
occurred on Friday.</p>

<p>After I had been in confinement six weeks and a 'half, they
took me to the Poorte, where was the pastor of Nyehoof (who was
pastor of Enchuysen) with an advocate. These asked me on what I
had determined. I said that I would adhere to the word of the
Lord. They then produced a letter; in which was written all
that I had confessed. Thereupon they asked me, whether I
considered the church of the Mennists a true church. I
said, "You call it so, but I regard it as the true church of
God." This they Wrote down. Then they asked me, whether I was
baptized upon my faith. I said, "Yes." They also asked me whether I had not been baptized in
my infancy. I said: 'Yes; but that was no baptism as Christ
commanded, for</p>

</div><div id="996"> 

<p>Christ taught to repent, amend, and then to be baptized for
the remission of sins. See, so I was baptized." Then they said
that infants were born in original sin; hence they had to be
cleansed by baptism. I replied, "Christ has redeemed us from the
fall and transgression of Adam; hence He says Himself, that to
the children belongs the kingdom of heaven." They said, "Yes,
those were circumcised children." Then they asked whether I had
been in the church of the Mennists. I replied that I had been
in the church of God. This they wrote down. <i>Ques.</i> "What
do you hold concerning the Roman church?" <i>Ans.</i> "Nothing."
<i>Ques.</i> "What do you hold touching the sacrament?" Axis."I
have never in all my life read of a sacrament, but of the
Lord's Supper; and this I indeed want to observe, as Christ has
commanded it; but of your I think nothing." <i>Ques.</i> "Do you
believe that God is almighty?" I said, "Yes.""And whether God
therefore should not come into the bread which they break?"
Ans."This I never believed." They also asked whether I did not
believe that Christ had received flesh and blood from Mary. I
briefly said that I did not believe it. These are principally
the articles which they asked rne, and they noted down every
thing. I then asked the Priest, "If I- should fulfill your will,
would you be willing to be responsible for my soul?" He
said, "Yes, for <i>ybu</i> and the whole world." I said that
this was as the apostle says: While they promise them liberty,
they themselves are the servants of corruption (II Peter 2:19).
He said that this was not spoken to them. And after some more
conversation which we had, they told me to go, and we bade one
another adieu for this time.</p>

<p>After I had been in prison seven'weeks, I was again taken to
the Poorte, into a large hall, where were three priests, one of
whom was the one of Nyehoof, with whom I have often been; the
other was a Friesian. These asked me what .I had de-. termined
on. I replied that by the help of God I would adhere to the
word of the Lord. He said that it was not the Word of God, and
that I was seduced; he was sorry, because we were both
Friesians;"for," said he,"when one has temporal matters on hand
that he does not understand, he seeks. advice from those that
are wise and knowing in such matters, and suffers himself to be
instructed; hence it is necessary that one also suffer himself
to be instructed by wise men of the holy Church, in matters
from which depends eternal salvation." <i>Ans.</i> "Whoever
rightly instructs me with the word of the Lord, him I will
gladly; hear;but by your instruction I should be seduced." They
said that I was already seduced; but if I would suffer myself
to be instructed by the holy church, they would pledge their
souls for nie at the last day. I replied that they should have
enough to,do with their own souls. But with them it was a
settled thing, that I was seduced. So we finally came to infant
baptism.</p>

<p>They said that infants were born..in original sin. I
said, "Christ made us free, and called the children to. Him,
declaring that to such belongs the kingdom of God."
<i>Priest.</i> "Flesh or blood cannot inherit the kingdom of
God; hence we must be born of water and of the Spirit;
therefore it follows that infants must be baptized, if they are
to be regenerated and inherit the kingdom of,God."
<i>Reytse.</i> "Children are in the grace of God as long as they
are in their ignorance, and .they, are washed through the blood
of Christ; hence baptism in their case is vain and to no
purpose." <i>Priest."How</i> do you understand regeneration?"
<i>Reytse.</i> "A man must truly repent and amend his life, with
a contrite heart confess his sins before God, that he is
sincerely sorry for them, and with confidence call to God for
forgiveness, and thus believe in God's Word and submit to it in
all obedience; upon such confession he is to receive baptism
for the remission of sins; this certainly cannot be done by
infants." <i>Priest.</i> "Nevertheless, infants must be
baptized; for the apostles baptized entire households, and
there doubtless, were also children." <i>Reytse.</i> "The house
of Stephanas addicted themselves to the ministry of the saints,
which no children can do." (I Cor. 16:13) . They then asserted
that first the apostles, and after them the holy fathers, had
instituted it, fifteen hundred years. ago. I said that the pope
had instituted it; who wanted to improve on Christ.</p>

<p>Then they were mad, and said that I was seduced, and should
plunge my soul and body into perdition. I said they might take
my life, but my soul I should save unto life eternal.
Priest."What do you think of the holy Roman Church?"
<i>Reytse.</i> "I do not believe in it." <i>Priest.</i> "Do you
not believe that the priests can forgive sin?"
<i>Reytse.</i> "No; for it is God alone that can forgive sin."
This they. wrote down. <i>Priest."Do you</i> not believe that
God's flesh and blood are in the bread which we break?"
<i>Reytse.</i> "No." <i>Priest.</i> "This is clear enough; for
Christ says: 'Take, eat;, this is my body;' this you cannot
contradict." <i>Reytse.</i> "Christ gave His disciples bread to
eat and wine to drink, as the evangelists testify, and not His
body, for He still sat there bodily at the table with them. And
to His disciples who understood His words carnally, as you do,
and murmured at it, He said</p>

<p>'The flesh profiteth nothing: the words that I speak unto
you, they are spirit, and they are life.' John 6:63. His flesh
and blood He gave as a redemption for many, and not that His
flesh is to be eaten. He is sitting at the right hand of God
His almighty Father, and shall not come thence, before He shall
judge the quick and the dead; hence He shall not come under
your teeth." <i>Priest.</i> "Nevertheless Paul says: 'The bread
which we break, is it not the body of Christ? and the cup which
we bless, is it not the blood of Christ?' hence we must believe
that God's flesh and blood are in the holy sacrament."
<i>Reytse."I</i> have not read of a sacrament, but of the
Lord's Supper; this I indeed want to observe with the church of
God, but yours I do not desire."</p>

</div><div id="997"> 

<p>They said much more with regard to it, which is too lengthy
for me to relate. They esteemed the sacrament so highly, that
whenever they name it, they raise their caps, and they looked
sharply at me, because I would not show it reverence too. They
also asked me whether I did not believe that Christ had
received flesh and blood from Mary. I said that Christ came by
His divine power out of heaven, was conceived in Mary through
the.Holy Ghost, and born of her, and took upon Him the form of
a servant, and became like unto us in all things, except sin,
so that He was not born of the blood, nor of the will of the
flesh, and did not receive flesh or blood from Mary, which came
to pass in such a manner, that Mary at first could not
understand it herself, for she asked the angel, "How shall this
be, seeing I know not <i>a</i> man?" The angel answered
her, "The Holy Ghost shall come upon thee, and the power of the
Highest shall overshadow thee: therefore also that holy thing
which shall be born of thee shall be called the Son of God."
Luke 1:34, 35. Against this they did not say much.
<i>Priest."Do you</i> not, believe that the saints in heaven
are to be honored and worshiped?" <i>Reytse.</i> "I indeed
desire to honor the saints, for men are honored; but not to
worship them. But I want to, worship God alone, for it is
written: 'Thou shalt worship the Lord thy God, and him only
shalt thou serve."' Matt. 4:10. <i>Priest.</i> "What do you
believe of purgatory?" <i>Reytse."I</i> have not read that
there is a purgatory; where is it written?" <i>Priest.</i> "In
the books of the Maccabees."</p>

<p>He further admonished me, that I should suffer myself to be
instructed by the holy church, which had stood for fifteen
hundred years, while our sect had existed only fifty years, for
Menno Symons had first introduced it. <i>Reytse.</i> "There were
from the beginning of the world two classes of people, a people
of God and a people of the devil. But the children of God have
always been persecuted and dispersed, so that they have always
been in a minority, and sometimes very few in number, so that
they had to hide themselves in caves and dens, and as they are
not of the world, the world does also not know them; but the
ungodly have always been powerful, and have prevailed, and
therefore you do not know the children of God, neither did your
fathers know them, and you think that they have only now
arisen."</p>

<p>They said that I was seduced; their church had always
existed from the beginning. I said, "When we shall appear before
the judgment seat of Christ, it will be found otherwise; then
you will say: These are they whom we had in derision: O how
they are now numbered among the children of God." Wisdom 5:3,
5. They also told me that I should not concern myself with the
Scriptures, but simply go to church, and suffer myself to be
instructed there, and not be obstinate, since the Scripture
says that every word is established in the mouth of two or
three witnesses, and hence I was bound to believe them.
<i>Reytse.</i> "I believe the word of the Lord farmore than your
testimony; I do not want to depart from it, and hope by the
help of God to live and die for it, because Christ says:
'Whosoever shall confess me before men, him will I confess also
before my Father which is in heaven."' Matthew 10:32.</p>

<p>We had many other words, which it would take too long to
relate. They approached me so with sophistry, that if. the Lord
had not been on my side, I would have had to succumb; so that I
may well say,"The Lord is my helper, of whom shall I be
afraid?" Ps. 56:11.</p>

<p>After I had been in prison nine weeks, I was again conducted
to the Poorte, where were two priests and the bishop's
commissary; one was the priest of Nyehoof, the other was from
the country: When I came to them, I uncovered my head, and
greeted them. They first asked me on what I had determined,
whether I would not amend. I said, "Yes, as much as is in my ability." They then produced a
letter, which contained the article which I had previously
confessed; this they read to me and asked whether I would
adhere to it. I said;"Yes." They said, then I was damned, and
should plunge soul and body into eternal perdition.
<i>Reytse.</i> "How dare you condemn me so dreadfully, whereas
judgment belongs to the Lord?" <i>Priest."You</i> have offended
against the Scriptures, and apostatized from the holy church,
which has stood for fifteen hundred years, while your sect has
not existed more than forty years; and you have suffered
yourself to be rebaptized, whereas you had been baptized
before."</p>

<p>Then we had many words again concerning,baptism; his
conclusion was, that children which die without baptism are
damned forever. <i>Reytse.</i> "And are you not afraid, so
dreadfully to;condemn the innocent children, when Christ has
promised them the kingdom of . heaven, so long as they remain
in their innocence?" <i>Priest.</i> "No one can enter into the
kingdom of heaven, he must first be born of water and of the
Spirit; hence children must be baptized, if they are to be
saved; the apostle also baptized many households, where
certainly there were also children." <i>Reytse.</i> "So far as
the households are concerned, it is written that the house of
Stephanas addicted themselves to the ministry of the saints,
which is certainly not a work of children. I Cor. 16:15. And of
the house of Cornelius it is written: 'That when Cornelius, the
centurion of Caesarea, had called together his friends and
kinsmen into his house, he said among other things to' Peter:
Thou hast well done that thou art come. Now therefore are we
all here present before God, to hear all things that are
commanded thee of God. And while Peter yet spake these words,
the Holy Ghost fell on all them, which heard the word. And they
of the circumcision which believed were astonished, as many as
came with Peter, because that on the Gentiles also was poured
out the gift of the Holy Ghost. For they heard them speak
with</p>

<p>tongues, and magnify God. Then answered Peter,</p>

</div><div id="998"> 

<p>can any man forbid water, that these should not be baptized,
which have received the Holy Ghost as well as we?' Acts 10:33,
44-47. From this you can easily perceive, if you are not
entirely struck with blindness, that this is not spoken of
children. Again, Paul preached the word of God to. the jailer
and to all that were in his house, and after they were baptized
he rejoiced with all those that were in his house, that he had
come to believe in God (Acts 16:34), which is above the
understanding of children, for to understand the preaching of
the Word of God, to believe in it, and to rejoice on account of
the faith, this is far from children." Then they said that
there were many other writings that testified with regard to
it; but I did not want to receive any writings except the New
Testament, which Christ sealed with His precious blood. Then
they asked me, whether the children of the heathen and the
Turks should also be saved. I said, "Yes, as well as your
baptized children." Then they were greatly astonished, and
spoke scornfully to me and damned me. One of the priests sat by
me, and asked me how I dared speak such words; he knew that I
was damned, as well as he knew that I was sitting by him. I
laughingly said "How could you know it better?" And after many
words which we had about infant baptism, I finally said that I
believed nothing but what I had confessed. They again asked me,
whether I did not believe that our Lord is present in the form
of bread. I said, "This I do not believe; for He will not come
under your teeth." I asked the priest whether he believed it.
Then he held out his finger and said he believed more certainly
that God was in the bread, than he believed that that was his
finger. And after other words which we had together, they got
some clean paper and asked all the articles of me anew</p>

<p>whether I acknowledged the church of the Mennists as a true
church, and how long it was since I had been baptized. I said:
- About four years. And so on, they asked all the articles of
me again. I answered them in the same manner as before, and
they noted down everything exactly, to deliver it to the lords.
Finally, when all the remarks had been concluded, they produced
a letter, which was the sentence which the bishop had concluded
over me, in which they damned me as an unbelieving, disobedient
and obstinate heretic, and delivered me into the hands of the
secular judges. Since he had sufficiently admonished me, and I
would not let myself be instructed, he, like Pilate, took water
and washed his hands, and also thought that he was clear of my
blood; hence I had to expect the sentence, and many other
words. Then they told me to go.</p>

<p>After I had been in prison twelve weeks, they led me into
the castellan's house, where were the bishop with a councillor,
the pastor of Oudenhoof, the pastor of Nyehoof, the pastor,;of
Jorwert, and the bishop's commissary. After.they had taken
their seats, they called me, and when I carne in I took off my
hat and sat as a sheep in:the midst of atroop of wolves. They
looked at me sharply and earnestly; but the Lord my God, in
whom I trust, strengthened me and: gave me a bold heart, so
that I was fearless before them all. The bishop commenced, and
asked me whether I would still continue in the faith. I was
silent for awhile, for it seemed unnecessary to me to answer
that question; but he had so much to say, that I was finally
compelled to defend myself; for I had resolved not to dispute
any more. Thus I occasionally reproved and contradicted their
foolish ignorance, for I was grieved that the truth should be
so blasphemed; and that they should not think that I would
listen to them. The sum and substance of what they said was,
that I was seduced, and that those who had taught me had been
seducers, as Menno, who was a vagabond. I said that I did not
rely upon Menno, or human doctrine, but only upon the Word of
God; in this I desire by the help of the Lord to live and to
die. We also had many other words, as, of infant baptism. I
said, "It is not contained in the Scriptures, that the children
are to be baptized; if this had been the will of the Lord, He
would doubtless have commanded it: but since there is nothing
written concerning it, and neither our Lord Jesus Christ nor
His apostles have made mention of it, it is a great
presumption, that we poor, vain human creatures want to improve
it, whereas it is written, that we are not to add to, or take
away from the Lord's commandments: he that does this, upon him
eternal woe is pronounced" (Debt. 4:2; Prov. 30:6; Revelation
22:18).</p>

<p>Finally the bishop said that none of all the articles so
surprised him, than this: That I did not believe that the Lord
Jesus Christ is now personally man in heaven, just as He was
upon earth, with wounds and stripes which He received from, the
Jews. This I would not accept because I had not read of it, but
I said, "I believe that He is now in the Divinity, sitting at
the right hand of the Almighty Father, in His glory, and shall
come again with power and majesty, as the Scripture testifies
with regard to it." Then the bishop took the Bible, and read
the vision which John had seen in the Island of Patmos, of one
who was like unto the Son of man; and when he had read it, he
closed the book, for it contradicted him. A man can certainly
not be of such a nature in his members, as John declares of
that vision.</p>

<p>They then rehearsed the articles of my faith anew, and I
confessed as I had always confessed before; and after they had
noted it down, they went away. The councillor said that I had
forfeited my life, according to the decree. They then took me
back into prison.</p>

<p>I would have related all these matters at length, but my
gift is small, and my hand heavy for writing; hence I must run
over them very briefly.</p>

<p>After I had been imprisoned about thirteen weeks, they
conducted me once more into the castellan's house, where was
the pastor of Nyehoof, who again began to say that Christ is
now person-</p>

</div><div id="999"> 

<p>ally in heaven, as He was upon earth, in like form as we
are. I defended myself, and, proved into him from John's
Revelation. He said that no one could understand John's
Revelation, which surprised me. And in all his remarks he
called me brother. I said, "Why do you call me brother?. I do
not want to be your brother." He . answered that he hoped that
we should yet become one fold. And after some more conversation
he left me.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER CONFESSION. WHICH REYTSE AYSESS<br />
MADE BEFORE THE BISHOP, ON THE STH<br />
OF JANUARY, A. D. 1574</h2> 

<p>The love of God, the communion of the Holy Ghost, and the
love of the Father, who gave His only Son for us all, keep,
strengthen and confirm you and us all unto the end, that we may
hereafter come to the Shepherd Jesus Christ. My affectionate
request of you, my cordially beloved friends, is, that you make
haste to enter into his rest. Heb. 4:11.</p>

<p>After all proper salutation, let me inform your love, that
on the fifth day of this year, 1574, I was before the bishop,
who said, "Good-day, and a Blessed New Year. Will you not yet
give yourself to the holy Catholic faith, in which all your
forefathers believed, and in which we still believe?" Ans."A
blessed New Year I indeed desire from the heart; but in your
faith I do not wish to believe, but I want to believe in the
holy Scriptures." The bishop said, I had built upon men, and
upon the doctrines of men. <i>Reytse."I</i> have not built upon
men; I have built upon the foundation of the apostles and
prophets, yea, upon the rock; therefore my house shall stand.
Behold, these are now the tempests that assail my house; had it
such a foundation, it would fall; but now it' is founded upon
the rock." <i>Bishop.</i> "What is the reason that you went out
from us, for you have confessed that you have never heard our
doctrine?" <i>Reytse.</i> "Hear me; I shall tell you: When I was
a child, I went there as others; but my parents kept me from
the sinners' path, for which I am very thankful to them. But
when I attained to my understanding, I read in the holy
Scriptures that the way to the kingdom of God is narrow and
strait, and that flesh and blood must remain on [the posts];
that we must be well fitted; that there must be a pure church;
that the stones must be hewn and squared, before they may be
put into the house of God, of which Christ Jesus is the
cornerstone; and that there are to be no whores, rogues,
drunkards, covetous, or idolaters in the church of God. But I
found that your church of which you are the head or ruler is
such a church; and I am concerned for you, because you are a
meek man; hence I pray you, that for once you will search the
holy Scriptures; for it seems to me that you know better than
you speak; you have a soul to lose as well as I." He said that
as regards drunkenness, fornication and other sins that were in
their church; they had ordained that one should pray for it,
and the priests would forgive the sins. I said, "The priests
cannot forgive sin, but to pray God to forgive sin, is very
good</p>

<p>but a man must pray from the heart, that he may never during
all the days of his life sin any more. But I must ask you once,
whether you think, that if a man sins today or tomorrow, and
asks the Lord for forgiveness, and does so every day, the Lord
will forgive him?" He said this could be. I said it could
not.</p>

<p>Finally the bishop made a long speech, that I would not obey
my superior, and had thus apostatized from their holy faith,
and joined the Mennists and Tibbites. I said I had never been
disobedient, and had never opposed the king, and did not want
to bear the sword against any one, as Christ teaches. Then the
bishop said he would take the clearest of that which I could
say nothing against, and that I should suppose myself to be
ignorant, and he would suppose that he was ignorant, and so the
Scriptures should judge between us. I told him to say on; if it
would agree with the Scriptures, I would hear him. He said the
Lofd spoke very clearly in the Gospel, where He says, "Take,
eat; this is my body, which is broken for you; likewise the
cup;" hence we must eat His flesh; and drink His blood, as He
said; this you cannot contradict. I said I well knew that it is
written that the Lord said, "Take, eat; this is my body"; but I
know that the Lord is in high heaven and does not come under
men's teeth for your own people do not believe that you give
them flesh and blood. He said they had to believe it. I said
that the Lord spoke thus, "Take, eat; this is my body which
shall be broken for you." This is what the Lord said, but the
disciples asked, "How can this man give us his flesh to eat?"
But the Lord said that flesh and blood profit nothing, but the
words are spirit and life (John 6). Hence it is clear enough,
that we are not to eat and drink Christ's flesh and blood, as
He said, but that we are thereby to remember His death and
sufferings; for the Lord gave His body for the whole world, and
for the original sin in which we were born. If the Lord had not
redeemed us from the sin imposed upon us by Adam, we could not
have been saved; but now the Lord has redeemed us with His
flesh and blood, and made us free from all sin, and shed His
blood for many; hence we cannot eat His flesh, because He made
us free with it. Gal. 5:1.</p>

<p>The bishop said that Christ did not say of His own flesh.
that it profiteth nothing, but of other flesh; hence, since the
Lord so clearly says it, we must eat His flesh, and drink His
blood if we are to be saved; for he said that Paul says, "Is
this not the cup of blessing?" Hence you cannot contradict what
Christ .and Paul have so clearly expressed. <i>Reytse."My</i>
lord, I well know what Christ and Paul said, for the apostles
brake bread from house to house, as we clearly read, in proof
of it, and as Christ. has left us." But he kept insisting that
we, had to eat the Lord's flesh, if we are to be saved..</p>

<p>The bishop further made a long speech concern-</p>

</div><div id="1000"> 

<p>ing the resurrection of the dead, how we shall die, and rise
again with this flesh, and many other remarks which he made
about the resurrection. I finally said that I indeed believe
that there is a resurrection of the dead, for if there were no
resurrection of the dead, Christ would profit us nothing and I
would in that case .not suffer thus; but that this was a
useless disputation. Then he dropped the matter, and made along
speech, how it was written of one Lord, one faith -and baptism;
hence I had transgressed this, having suffered myself to be
rebaptized, when I had been baptized once, and that I had
transgressed the holy Scriptures, and been baptized in the name
of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost, which is
contrary to the ordinance of the holy Church. <i>Reytse."I</i>
have not been rebaptized, having been baptized once; for I well
know that there is written of one Lord and one faith; hence I
betook myself to one baptism as the Lord teaches in many
places, that the believing are to be baptized: I therefore
betook myself to the baptism of repentance, as is proper
according to the Scriptures, and according to my human
weakness. But what you say, that I have been rebaptized, this I
deny; for I do not recognize the baptism of infants as a
baptism, but as a human institution, as is obvious enough,
since there is no Scripture that children ought to be
baptized."</p>

<p>The bishop said that we must be born of water and of the
Spirit, if we are to be'saved; hence children must be baptized,
if they are to be saved. <i>Reytse.</i> "No; this is no
Scripture, that children ought to be baptized; for the Lord
called the children to Him, that they should not be turned
away, for theirs is the kingdom of God; hence they are already
saved." He said that they were believing [believers?] children,
that were circumcised, and he made a long speech about the
circumcision of Abraham, that the children had to be
circumcised, or they were damned; and as then was circumcision,
so now' baptism has been ordained 'by the holy fathers, as is
now the case. <i>Reytse."To</i> this I say no; it is not so-,
that the children that were not circumcised were damned; for it
was a command of God, that they should be circumcised. They
were to be circumcised because they were Abraham's seed; the
Lord had so commanded it, because they should be His people,
and not for the reason that they that were not circumcised
should be damned. For they were circumcised on the eighth day,
and many must have died before they reached the age at which
they received the sign of circumcision; hence great injustice
would certainly have been done the poor children, 'and in such
a case all the female children would certainly have been
damned, who are heirs of the kingdom of God as well as we." To
this he said the children had nevertheless to he baptized, if
'they were to be saved. <i>Reytse."No; I</i> further"say, that
the children are in the hands of God, so long as they are
ignorant, and baptism does not' belong to them; but to those
that have repented'; for John preachedrepentance and amendment,
and only those [the penitent] to be baptized, for the remission
of sins as he also says: O generation of vipers, who hath
warned you to flee from the wrath to come? Repent, therefore,
and save yourselves from this untoward generation." Luke 3:7,
8; Acts 2:40.</p>

<p>The bishop said that I could not prove it with John's
baptism. I said that Christ Himself came to John, and requested
it of John. John refused it to the Lord. The Lord said, "Suffer
it to be so now, for thus it becometh us to fulfill all
righteousness;" and John suffered him. Why do you say that I
can not prove it with John's baptism? for Christ Himself
requested it. The bishop made but little reply to it. I said, "I
will show you still more Scriptures, that it belongs to
believers, as the eunuch to whom Philip came. Philip
said, "Understandest thou what thou readest?" He said, "How
should I understand it, except some one instruct me?" Philip
preached unto him from the beginning, and he believed it. He
said, "Here is water; what doth hinder me to be baptized?"
Philip said, "If thou believest with all thine heart, thou
mayest." The eunuch replied, "I believe that Jesus Christ is the
Son of the living God." Then he baptized him. (Acts 8). Here we
see that faith was before baptism nor was he a child. Further,
in like manner also Paul was baptized, when he had become a
believer. Pray, read. the Acts of the Apostles through. The
bishop said, they also did want to baptize such adults that had
not been baptized in their infancy, as the heathen or Tibbites,
who were not baptized in their infancy; hence they would also
baptize adults; for he said that it was written, "He that believeth and is baptized shall be saved." Though
faith is mentioned before baptism, it is all the same; hence
children must be baptized: for there are many that do not
become so old that they attain their reason; hence they
certainly die without baptism and are as certainly damned.
Children must therefore be baptized, that they may ail be
saved. I said, that the children are in the hands of God, and
baptism does not pertain to them, for there is no Scripture
which declares that it does. Had it been the will of the Lord,
He would have commanded it; but now He has commanded that the
believers are to be baptized, as He taught, and as His apostles
practiced. Hence prove to me with the Scriptures, that it is
commanded to baptize poor innocent infants, which have done no
sin; for though I had never so many children, I would not have
them receive your baptism. He said, though it was not commanded
to baptize children, neither was it forbidden to baptize them;
hence there is no Scripture prohibiting it. I said, "All that
the Lord has not commanded He has forbidden. Hence, if He has
commanded to baptize the believing, men ought not to do
differently from what the Lord Himself has commanded, for we
everywhere read of a baptism of repentance, and not of a
baptism of infants, as you teach and do. Why do you do that
which ought not to be? For it</p>

</div><div id="1001"> 

<p>seems to me that you know better; tell the truth." But he
made me no reply to it; except that I was seduced; if I adhered
to this faith I would be damned; hence I should betake myself
to the holy Catholic faith. And we had many other words, but it
grew late, and he went out, and said to the castellan, that
there was no hope for me, and that I would not suffer myself to
be instructed; and told me to consider the matter further. I
said that I wanted to do that; but in this respect I have
already considered; but do you consider it, I pray you.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER CONFESSION OF REYTSE AYSESS, MADE<br />
BEFORE AN ARROGANT PRIEST; TOGETHER<br />
WITH AN EPISTLE OR EXHORTATION<br />
TO THE FRIENDS</h2> 

<p>Shortly after there came a priest, who was very arrogant; he
asked me what I had determined with regard to the letter which
the bishop had sent me. <i>Reytse."</i>I have determined even
as I said to you the last time. For by what he writes I have
not been made weaker, but stronger, he foolishly writes that no
sin hinders or prevents a man, and that we may observe the
Supper with whores and rogues, and that also no sin is so great
that it can prevent a man; all of which he wants to prove with
the eighth chapter of Mark, where the Lord fed the great
multitude." <i>Reytse.</i> "What do you want to prove thereby? O
how blind you are!" He became angry, and would not understand
Scripture, but blasphemed and spoke very ugly, and said that I
condemned and rejected the Lord's death with my second baptism.
But I said that I did not condemn the Lord's death, but deemed
it good;"for, if I should confess this as you say, woe would be
to me; for I do not recognize your baptism as a baptism, since
there is no Scripture for it. But with your infant baptism, you
reject Christ's sufferings and death, for Christ has redeemed
us; but you say that the children are damned, which you cannot
prove with Scripture. But those who live in sin, who, the Lord
says shall not enter the kingdom of God, these you say are
saved; drunkards, covetous, and fornicators, and whatever sins
they may do, who the Lord says shall not inherit the kingdom of
God, these you say are saved. But the poor children, who are
already saved, as the Lord has said, these you say are damned.
Is it not a lamentable matter that you are so blinded? Hence
wake up once, I pray you, for it will ruin you." He said that I
had a faith like a Turk. I said, "What is the Turk's faith?" He
said, "The Turk believes in a piece of wood, or in whatever
suits him." I said that they [the papists] believed in a piece
of bread, which they held up as God, worshiping it, and falling
upon their knees before it, and regarding it as God. Likewise,
the idolatrous infant baptism, is that any better than the
Turk's faith?" He became angry, and reviled us much, and did
not think that we were the right people, I said, "If I should
tell you what I consider you to be, you would not likeit." He
said tell it. <i>Reytse.</i> "Well then I shall tell you; I
consider you the vile world, the congregation of the dead, and
heathen and Turks according to the spirit, and that you are
alienated from the life of God (Prov. 21:16; Eph. 4:18); and as
is written concerning you in Daniel 12, and in Revelation, so
it shall be found in the day of the Lord. Repent therefore, and
come out from her, that ye be not partakers of her sins" (Rev.
18:4).</p>

<p>Then he arose and hastened away, but I overtook him in
another room, where we conversed for a little while about
infant baptism and other things. Finally he said that he could
not remain any longer, since he was to stand godfather to a
child, I begged him not to do it;"for" said I,"The child is as
good as you can make it." He said that he would do it,
nevertheless. He also spoke much about the war, and about the
Gueux* that their cause was a bad one, and that we aided them
with money and property. I told him what he said was not true;
for we did not want in anywise to defend them with money or
blood,"for I think nothing of the Gueux, neither of you, for
you cannot stand before God, miserably as you are betraying and
slaying one another. However, the Gueux are not as bloodthirsty
as you are, for if they had apprehended me, they would let me
go, but you want to shed my blood." He became angry and
said, "You desperate miscreant, should we not kill you? we
should not be able to answer before God [if we should allow to
live] such a heretic as you are; for we do so much running on
your account that no money could hire us to do it; hence you
shall here receive the temporal fire, and hereafter the
eternal, because you will not suffer yourself to be instructed,
as much as we have done for you."</p>

<p>I talked to him very gently, but he said that I had the
devil in me, and that he transformed himself into an angel of
light, and had seduced me, that I could. not remain in the true
way. <i>Reytse.</i> "I have no devil, but I speak with a free
and glad heart." He reviled much; adducing no Scriptures but
only saying that they had done much for me, and were always on
the run to win my soul and save my life, and now there was no
prospect that I would renounce my heresy; hence the bishop had
to cut me off, as was right. <i>Reytse."I</i> never desired
that you should come to me, and you may stay at home for I do
not wish to hear you, nor to believe you, and you might have
saved all your running, for the reward which you earned by me
will not be great."</p>

<p>Finally he spoke about praying, and boasted much of his
praying; he said that he prayed more in one week, than I in
three months, and he had much to say about praying, and that
Christ prayed in the temple. I said that he was like the
Pharisees, who boasted themselves so much of their praying, and
stood in the, temple, and on the street corners, to be seen of
men. And in all your words you are like them; hence take good
heed how you boast, for a tree shall be known by its fruit; for
I do not like</p>

<p class="c8">* Beggars, a sobriquet of the Reformed.</p>

</div><div id="1002"> 

<p>your fruit. He said that I had the heart of a Pharisee, and
he their clothes; which is the better. <i>Reytse.</i> "No; it
seems to me you have both, the heart and the clothes, for the
Lord did not act thus, neither did His apostles lead such a
life, nor have such clothing in their time, as you have, which
is contrary to the Scriptures, hence take heed what you put on,
for I beseech you to repent; for you cannot stand before the
Lord with your faith, nor with your walk, nor with your church,
for which you want to be responsible in the day of the Lord."
Finally he went away. I told him to tell the bishop that he did
not need to come again on my account, since I would in no wise
hear him. He bade me good day, and they brought me back into
prison. About three days after, a messenger came from the
bishop, and said that I should hear my sentence in three days
from that time. On the appointed day they came and transacted
their business, as they understood it, and passed judgment upon
me, being very pompous and verbose in their sentence. When they
had finished their business, they went away; but there remained
a priest, who reviled much and talked improperly and unfitly. I
would not talk with him, because they had delivered me over,
and also because he spoke so ill and unseemly. Then he went
away. A considerable time elapsed before I wrote this down, for
I could not well recollect it because of my fellow prisoners.
And my memory also is rather short; some remarks I have
forgotten; and if I were to write all, it would be far too
much, for I have been before the bishop and his colleagues
eleven times at least, and I talked much with them concerning
all the articles of the faith.</p>

<p>Written by me, your beloved brother in the Lord.</p>

<p>REYTSE AYSESS.</p>

<h2>AN EPISTLE OR EXHORTATION OF REYTSE AYSESS, WRITTEN TO THE FRIENDS</h2> 

<p>O dear friends, fear not, neither be surprised, when you are
tried by manifold temptations which may come upon a Christian,
and also do come upon him in bonds and imprisonment, as I now
find, it is grievous according to the flesh, but very light
according to the spirit, for it is the power of God. This I
have experienced in these bonds, that the Lord is with those
that seek and fear Him from the heart. Hence, my dear friends,
who have received like faith with me, fear the Lord from the
heart, that if it should be the Lord's will to have you here in
such bonds or imprisonment, you may be able to withstand, for
they employ much craftiness and subtlety, to draw us away from
the truth, and they know how to exalt lies, and abolish truth,
with feigned words of their own devising; sometimes with very
gentle words, and sometimes with harsh ones, by which they
think to weaken and discourage one, as they have done with me.
And also Satan, as Peter says, walketh about us as a roaring
lion, seeking where he can devour us; so he has also assailed
me, but the Lord has hitherto kept me, for which I thank Him.
But Satan ,once assailed me with a temptation which I must
write to you, to show you how crafty the evil One is. I once
spake with a priest, who reviled us and said that they sang the
psalms of David, while we sang hymns which men had made. And
when I came back into prison, the tempter very craftily
assailed me, that it was true, that we did sing hymns which men
had made. And I was grieved that I should suffer, and it might
be wrong, and I was still young in years, and it grieved me
much. Finally I thought: I know better; I know that the hymns
aTe made from the holy Scriptures, and that it is right; if I
could do according to them, I should be saved. Then I reflected
on the priest's walk, and on their faith, and on the things
which they had spoken against the holy Scriptures, which are
lies, and I entreated the Lord, and it entered my mind no more.
Hence, dear friends, Satan is very crafty; but we must always
pray the Lord in every assault which he makes upon us, in
manifold temptations, for the almighty, eternal, merciful God
will not suffer us to be tempted above that we are able, but
will with the temptation also make a way to escape, as he has
spoken (I Cor. 10:13); for He is our Captain, our Champion in
all our distress. And do not fear though they place me at the
stake, and burn me; but be strengthened thereby, that the Lord
is still so powerful in His works; and. always fear Him, and
praise Him, and thank Him, now and forever. Amen.</p>

<p>I further thank those who sent me that book, for it
delighted and rejoiced me much in the Lord; and I commend all
of you who fear Him to the Lord.</p>

<h2>ANOTHER CONFESSION OF REYTSE AYSESS, MADE BEFORE THE COMMISSARY</h2> 

<p>After I had been imprisoned nineteen weeks, I was brought
before the commissary of the royal court, who first demanded an
oath of me, that I should tell the truth. I said, "The Lord has
forbidden us to swear in anywise; hence I do not want to take
an oath." Then he said that I should answer to his questions
with yes and no. I said, "I do not want to do this, for you
might ask me something which it would not be proper for me to
tell; hence I must first hear what you want to ask me." He then
first asked me my age. I answered, "Twenty-four or five years." He wrote it down. He further
asked where I was born, where I had last resided, and how many
children I had. I said"One."<br />
<i>Com.</i> "How old is it?" <i>Reytse.</i> "Half a year."<br />
<i>Com.</i> "Is it baptized?" <i>Reytse."No,</i> not that I
know." Cove."What is the reason that it has not been done?"
<i>Reytse.</i> "Because it is not commanded in the holy-
Scriptures."<br />
<i>Com.</i> "Are you baptized?" <i>Reytse.</i> "Yes, upon my
faith, as Christ has commanded."<br />
<i>Com.</i> "Were you not</p>

</div><div id="1003"> 

<p>baptized in your infancy?" <i>Reytse.</i> "Yes, but I do not
recognize that as a scriptural baptism."</p>

<p>He wrote it all down. He asked me who the one was that had
baptized me, where it had taken place, and who and how many had
been at my father's house. I said, "I do not want to tell you
this; I hope you will not ask me concerning it. If you thirst
so much for the blood and life of men, you have me in your
hands; do with me according to your pleasure, I shall by the
help of the Lord freely offer my neck for it; but I hope of
your grace, that you will not question me so severely in regard
to it." He said they should indeed question me more severely
yet; hence you better tell me voluntarily, than involuntarily.
I said, "The Lord my God will keep me, for this I trust His
grace." And after he had written down everything, he told me to
go.</p>

<h2>A LETTER FROM REYTSE AYSESS, WRITTEN TO HIS FATHER</h2> 

<p>Dear father, some time when it suits you, write me something
concerning your intentions or purpose, as to where you intend
to live, and how your temporal affairs stand, also in regard to
my sister, and also some consolation, for this rejoices me
much.</p>

<p>I further inform you that there are now two other prisoners
with me; they are old men, and we agree tolerably well; for
they have been confined with me for about a month, and we have
spoken somewhat of the way of the Lord. They are willing to
exchange that which they have for something better, and they
think that they need salvation as much as I do. They have
indeed formed the good resolve. to live no more unto sin, but
to be transformed into newness of life, which I am glad to
hear; but God knows the heart. I further let you know that one
evening the colonel's wife came before the prison, just as we
were about to he fed. She therefore first asked how many
prisoners there were here. They told her. Then she asked what
their crimes were. Then one excused himself, as best he could.
She then asked me, what my crime was. I said that my crime for
which they held me was not very great. She had heard of me, and
said I should suffer myself to be instructed by those who were
wiser than I. I said, I would suffer myself to be instructed
with that which was right. She further said that people said
that I did not believe in the Father, nor in the Son, and also
not in the Holy Ghost; which I earnestly contradicted, and said
that I thought much thereof, and that my faith was resting
thereon, and that if I did not believe in the Father, the Son,
and the Holy Ghost, I should not be worthy to live. Then she
inquired what it really was. The castellan's son said that I
did not believe in the mass. Then she became angry, and I said
that I did not believe in the ordinances of men, as, namely,
infant baptism, and their sacrament-that the blessed Lord was
not present in it, but I believed that He was in the hrone of
eternal life. She became angry and said that if there were no
executioner, she would rather put me to death herself, than
that I should live, And she gave the two prisoners that are
with me seven stivers, and forbade them to give me anything of
it, and warned them, that they should not allow themselves, to
be seduced .by me, and went away. Furthermore, dear father,
deliver to my wife, at the. first, opportunity, the letter
which I have written he, and exhort her to that which is good,
this I affectionately pray you, .and all my dear friends; my
dear old mother above all, and my two sisters, and my young
brother, that he conduct himself well, when he gets a little
more understanding</p>

<p>and also my poor child, for whose poor soul I am so greatly
concerned, that it may please the Lord. But I hope the Lord
will take it into His kingdom, before it commits sin. Walk in
love. Eph. 5:2. Further, dear father, I would desire a
Testament, if you could send me one; for I have had our
brother's Testament for a very long time, and he needs it
himself, and has it now again.</p>

<p>Written in my bonds, by me, your dear son.</p>

<p>REYTSE AYSESS.</p>

<h2>A LETTER FROM REYTSE AYSESS, WRITTEN TO HIS MOTHER</h2> 

<p>My dear mother, I wish you the gracious, eternal, merciful
Father, and the love of God, and the comfort of the Holy Ghost.
as a greeting; and the Father of peace rule in your heart.
Amen,</p>

<p>My very dear and affectionately beloved mother, who bore me
in your own body, and brought me into the world with great
pain, yea, whose breasts have nourished me and who nourished
and instructed me in all truth, you have kept me ,from all
sinful companions; yea, you have kept me from all false
doctrine, yea, you have kept me from the whore of Babylon, .
yea, you have brought me into the church of the living God. You
have kept me from all sin, according to your best ability. You
have brought me thus far with the help of the Lord, Behold, my
very affectionately beloved mother; it is therefore my entreaty
and request of you, that you will not fret and grieve on my
account, for I hope that you have not brought me up to the
reproach, but to the praise, of God and His church. After all
proper salutation it is my request and entreaty of you, that
you will forgive and excuse me, if I have in anywise grieved
you, whether it may have been done in my youth or ignorantly,
this I request of you. Further, my dearly beloved mother, I
must write you a little from the bottom of my heart and the
inmost of my soul, though you know it, and are taught of God,
and are my dear mother, yet I write to you that in none of us
there may be found an evil heart of unbelief, and that none may
be entangled by the, deceitfulness of sin, and depart from the
living God on account of any tribulation. II Peter 1:12; John
6:45; Heti. 4:12, 13,</p>

</div><div id="1004"> 

<p>Behold, my dear, beloved mother;-let us not be troubled, or
become despondent; though they have touched you in property and
blood [kindred], fear not, but be of good courage, for the Lord
is our Redeemer. Behold the afflictions of job, how the Lord
helped him. And behold the end of the Lord; for the Lord will
not forsake you and. me, if we trust in Him, for the Lord has
helped me to fight, for I have now been before them twelve
times. The Lord is my Captain, He will not forsake me. Nor do I
want to forsake Him, neither for life nor death. Hence, my dear
and much beloved mother, let us go to and sincerely prostrate
ourselves before the Lord, for all our lives end in death, and
when we shall all be presented before the judgment seat of
Christ, what manner of persons must we then be: Therefore, my
beloved mother, who have obtained like faith with me, let us
prepare ourselves, and gird up the loins of our mind. And let
us lay aside every weight, and the sin Which doth so easily
beset us, and let us run with patience the race that is set
before us, looking unto Jesus the author and finisher of our
faith; and we shall receive a reward. Heb. 12:1, 2; I Cor.
3:14. Dearly beloved mother, though they have touched you in
your property, and me in my life, what does it matter. The Lord
our God will help us; but we must trust in Him. The world shall
rejoice, and we shall be sorrowful; but our sorrow shall be
turned into joy. John 16:20. But, dear mother, we must
patiently wait for it. Though they speak evil of us, dear
mother, they treated the Lord our God in the same manner before
us.</p>

<p>Hence I am not surprised; they have condemned me so o
